play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri001.html on line 148: Sitten viimeisessä ku
pl etissa,
ellauri001.html on line 153: Then at the last and only cou
pl et fraught
ellauri001.html on line 349:
And now for something compl etely different!
ellauri001.html on line 459: play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri001.html on line 998:
play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri001.html on line 1723: purki di
pl omaattisuhteet hyödyttöminä
ellauri001.html on line 1847:
Törrtelöpiä, ipl akka, myterä, rötykkä, rokka,
ellauri001.html on line 2134: sanoo isä, ei mikään peopl e person
ellauri001.html on line 2150: sanomme kuin player.fi/4641732-Kootut-runot-seka-runoilijakehitys-paivakirjojen-ja-kirjeiden-valossa-werner-soderstrom-osakeyhtio-helsinki.html"> Saima Harmaja .
ellauri001.html on line 2428:
play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri001.html on line 2488:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b3/John_Byron_d._1600.jpeg/800px-John_Byron_d._1600.jpeg" height="200px" />
ellauri001.html on line 2489:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f4/John1stLordByron.jpg/330px-John1stLordByron.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri001.html on line 2490:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/07/John_Byron-Joshua_Reynolds-1759.jpg/800px-John_Byron-Joshua_Reynolds-1759.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri001.html on line 2491:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9d/John_Byrom._Line_engraving_by_Topham_after_D._Rasbotham._Wellcome_V0000940.jpg/800px-John_Byrom._Line_engraving_by_Topham_after_D._Rasbotham._Wellcome_V0000940.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri002.html on line 24:
KAUNOKAINEN JA KUOLEMA play:none">Nuoruus
ellauri002.html on line 155:
play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri002.html on line 246:
VIDEO
ellauri002.html on line 251: play" button - ->
ellauri002.html on line 252:
play-button">
ellauri002.html on line 265: That in despair their last fortunes de
pl ore.
ellauri002.html on line 599: Varsin
pl atonisesti eteni suhde,
ellauri002.html on line 643:
VIDEO
ellauri002.html on line 657:
VIDEO
ellauri002.html on line 677:
VIDEO
ellauri002.html on line 749:
VIDEO
ellauri002.html on line 803:
VIDEO
ellauri002.html on line 911:
VIDEO
ellauri002.html on line 1244: julkkis ja po
pl aulaja,
ellauri002.html on line 1399: Liikkuu piireis vääris, paska tulee päin
pl äsii/
ellauri002.html on line 1520:
play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri002.html on line 1663:
USA: a great pl ace for hamburgers, but who'd want to live there.
ellauri002.html on line 1691: Elettiin kynän, paperin ja lankapuhelimen aikaa. Ensimmäinen kirje don Caritalta Amerikkaan oli pommikirje. Siinä oli pommin kuva ja tieto, mitä olin velkaa. Olin ennen lähtöä kuhmuttanut dona Caritan isän kupl afolkkaria matkalla Turussa katsomassa Auli Hakulisen uutta vauvaa. Dona Carita lainasi rahat vähistä opintolainoistaan.
ellauri002.html on line 1702: Ekassa tuotantokaudessa lupasin kertoa myös Sysmästä. Suopelto Sysmiössä oli vanhempien uusi kesäpaikka. Lapset alko kasvaa isoiks, Sommarhemin pl ottu umpeen, ja ne halus paremmat maisemat ja uimapaikat. Calle löysi Sysmästä vanhan osuuskaupan (sellainen oli muotia), entisen kievarin, jonka vieressä oli höyrylaivalaituri. Se remontoitiin perusteellisesti. Iso talo, pieni tontti, Päijänteen hulppeet maisemat. Meille lapsille se ei enää ollut mikään paikka, ei jäänyt kummempia muistoja. Vietin siellä ylioppilaskesää kuvista päätellen enimmäkseen yöpuvussa. Muistan että piirsin antiikin Kreikan karttoja.
ellauri002.html on line 1815: kert se anto mulle lahjaks säälittävän pl ärän Be Your Own Best Friend /
ellauri002.html on line 2150: Chicagosta oli dona Caritalla lippu Suomeen. Matkakassassa oli jäljellä taksimaksu pl us yksi dollari. Dona Carita lähti kentälle pahasti myöhässä. Onneksi lentoliikennekin oli ruuhkautunut, muuten ei tiedä miten oisi käynyt dona Caritan rahattomana yksin Chicagossa. Don Jaimen greyhound-bussi vei ilmaiseksi Bostoniin.
ellauri002.html on line 2210: Moskovan reissu oli vitsi. Oltiin Moskovan yliopiston vieraina. Mentiin junalla. Elettin pysähtyneisyyden aikaa. Moskova oli luminen ja harmaa (ei mainoksia kiitos). Mukana oli filosofian laitoksen parhaisto pl us apulaiset. Meillä oli päällystakkina yksi pikkuhattu, joka vahti ettei myyty sukkahousuja. Pakkasta oli lujasti, kaikilla oli karvalakit armeijan mallia. Pectopaheissa tarjottiin vanhoja valjaita. Aamiaiseks gostinitsassa paakku smetanaa. Kun punaposki piti puhetta, sen punaisen nenän ympärillä pörräsi kärpänen. Vessatäti kysyi onko iso hätä vai pieni, kaksi vaiko riittääkö yksi paperi. Wexi Salmi valitti tiukkaa ohjelmaa, ei edes ehdi paskalle.
ellauri003.html on line 22:
MAZETAN 3 KULTARAHAA play:none">Aikuisuus
ellauri003.html on line 801: mutta korttipelit ihan tupl a tyhmiä.
ellauri003.html on line 1290: Er: Kennst du den Strand und seinen Schlammbestand? Hän: Tunnetko rannan ja sen mutapl otun?
ellauri003.html on line 1364: tais se pl ääni lopultaki olla
ellauri004.html on line 20: LEUKAVASTI LAUKAISTUA play:none">Dantea
ellauri004.html on line 498: BRIAN: There´s no pl easing some peopl e.
ellauri004.html on line 664: VIDEO
ellauri004.html on line 711: Sprung in compl eteness where his feet pass
ellauri004.html on line 715: Born of the one light Eden saw pl ay
ellauri004.html on line 839: Appl e,
ellauri004.html on line 1075: pl ääniä etukäteen mietittyä,
ellauri004.html on line 1113: Tässä kohtaa pl ääniä sä tuut peliin,
ellauri004.html on line 1125: Eli tää on pl ääni siis, sä ja noi muut
ellauri004.html on line 1189: laskea yks pl us yksi, ja sitä pelottaa.
ellauri004.html on line 1207: Miksei se vaan sanonu niinkuin muutkin isit, et hyvä on, tää riittää selkäsauna, oo vastedes kiltti, älä enää koskaan tuota tee. Miks ihmeessä se itseensä ampuu jalkaan vielä? Pitääkö sen tosiaan ittelleen oma moka sovittaa? Kolmen hengen ringissä itseään (eli toisiaan) perseeseen potkia kuin karhukopl a? No jaa, ei hassumpikaan idea, jos oli kaikki isin syytä. Mut se ei liene tämän sadun moraali.
ellauri004.html on line 1229: a poor pl ayer that struts and frets
ellauri004.html on line 1269: Kiusaaja spl ittaa kentän kiltin paimenen kanssa
ellauri004.html on line 1425: Toisin näillä aapoilla. Laiska epatto ei kauan jaksa ähertää, kun jo alkaa kikyloikkaa kehittää, miten voisi ansaita enemmän vähemmällä vaivalla. Kasvaa siten tupl aräjähtävästi termiittipesän kulutus sekä pääluvun että tuottavuuden kasvusta, ja samaa vauhtia alkaa paska kasaantua harvempiin käsiin.
ellauri005.html on line 21: TYTTÖ JA JÄLKIRUOKA play:none">Miltonia
ellauri005.html on line 266: If church and court repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 273: If potentates repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 280: And if they once repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 287: And if they make repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 294: And wish them not repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 301: And as they shall repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 308: And when they do repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 315: And as they do repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 322: And if they will repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 329: If arts and schools repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 336: And if they do repl y,
ellauri005.html on line 503: Kelpaa mennä eläkkeelle pl okimoskaa rustaamaan,
ellauri005.html on line 555: Näkyy marisevan pl okissa kun pojanpoika kiroaa.
ellauri005.html on line 793: Herran pl ääni porsii, kirkko taantuu.
ellauri005.html on line 988: kaikki etukäteen pl aneerataan parhain päin:
ellauri005.html on line 1060: kuoleman äiskä pl us sisko sekä kolleega.
ellauri005.html on line 1150: Men are so pl easant, so easy to pl ease.
ellauri005.html on line 1194: Would you compl ain if I took out another fellow?
ellauri005.html on line 1224: You go to see a pl ay or ballet,
ellauri005.html on line 1347: And let the clouds fill with thunderous appl ause
ellauri005.html on line 1383: pl antera han på marken
ellauri005.html on line 1394: ||: därför han ock :|| vin pl anterat har.
ellauri006.html on line 21: GANGSTERIKUNINGAS play:none">Psalttaria
ellauri006.html on line 282: se selvästi kuin pl äkki:
ellauri006.html on line 367: May the better pl ayer win.
ellauri006.html on line 1275: Neljä kivaa kaveria on rupisella jopilla. Kolme besserwisseriä pl us yx nuori nenäkäs.
ellauri006.html on line 1390: No jopia se pelottaa, jopi kauhistuu, ja katuu puheitaan. Se tuhisee nyt tomussa, ja pyytää lisäinfoa. Elifas et co. saa ansaitusti tuulispäältä satikutia. Vähän hämäräxi jää, mitä ne sanoi väärin. Ehkä ne vaan ei työntäneet kärsää tomuun yhtä syvälle kun Jopi, ei tehneet yhtä perusteellista jopia. Rangaistuxexi ne saa uhrata seizemän mullia ja saman werran oinaita, ja suosikkipoika jopi saa ne grillata (pl us parhaat palat).
ellauri006.html on line 1424: Näin on termiittiapinoillakin. Lait kuten Moosexen 20 - oops - 10 kpl suojaa omistajan oikeuxia ja yhteiskuntajärjestystä. Muunlaista moraalia ei olekaan. Oman geenipuulin suosinta on alkeellista klaaniajattelua, korruptiota, nepotismia. Se on tehtävä salassa, oikea käsi ei saa nähdä kun vasen panee möngöt suvun taskuun. Moraali on säätyläisten salaliitto, kurkojen kartelli, korttitalo kuvakorteille, hiljainen sopimus josta ei saa lipsua, tai alkaa taas verikosto pyöriä.
ellauri006.html on line 1482: When many peopl e hear that unicorns are mentioned in the Bible, they imagine the mythical unicorn with a flowing mane and a sparkling horn. But, that image of the unicorn is only fantasy. Unicorns are mentioned in the Bible – in fact, they are mentioned in the Bible in nine times. But, before you rush off to check it out for yourself you need to know that the word unicorn only occurs the in the Authorized King James Version of the Bible, which means if you have a modern Bible, another word has probably been substituted for unicorn to distinguish the unicorns mentioned in the Bible from the mythical ones.
ellauri006.html on line 1492: We understand. You're not here for the ads, but seeking your soul's salvation. Wrong, friend, ads are just what you are here for, and for our remuneration. Ads help us keep the lights on and provide great Christian content for free. You have some software that's blocking ads turned on, so if you could pl ease choose one of the following donations to keep supporting BibleStudyTools we'd really appreciate it. So will Google, our redeemer. And watch those ads too, and buy the stuff, it's our livelihood. Take it from us, it's morally good, God likes it. Kijtof.
ellauri006.html on line 1637: VIDEO
ellauri006.html on line 1641:
ellauri006.html on line 1642: play-button">
ellauri006.html on line 1737: Sain tän banaanikirjaston pokkarin isosiskolta. Kirjan juoni ja moraali on seuraava. Läpimätä mutta sentimentaalinen lakimies Charlie huijaa kaverinsa kanssa mafiosoa, ansaitsee hirmu läjän massia sen selän takana. Tarkoitus on lähtä karkuun jouluaattona. Suunnitelma kompl isoituu, Charlie "joutuu" tappamaan lähes kaikki muut juonessa olijat, paitsi tyhmää pornoklubin pokea, joka katuu katkottuaan ilkeeltä juipilta kaikki sormet. Poke joutui lapsenvahdix kun sen äiti ja isäpuoli lähti matkailuautolla katolisten jouluhuvipuistoretkelle.
ellauri006.html on line 1775: pl ay soldiers, we have flints and bayonets,
ellauri006.html on line 1780:
ellauri006.html on line 1784:
ellauri006.html on line 1785: play-button">
ellauri007.html on line 20: KAPINAKENRAALIN TIMANTIT play:none">Lyriikkaa
ellauri007.html on line 277: den andra rosenröd, med pl it.
ellauri007.html on line 536: Do not pl ace me in the refrigerator.
ellauri007.html on line 554: Seiokrontro – prafripl o:
ellauri007.html on line 816: Leopardin täpl iä on sillä vekkulisti päällä.
ellauri007.html on line 817: mut täpl ien takaa
ellauri007.html on line 1070: Bye bye peopl e
ellauri007.html on line 1071: Thanks for the pl astic
ellauri007.html on line 1279: VIDEO
ellauri007.html on line 1368: The tanuki, or "raccoon-dog," is a stapl e of Japanese folkore. They're known as tricksters, shape-shifters...and as a symbol of good luck. You can find statues of them outside of restaurants throughout Japan. They're considered lucky because their enormous scrotums (which are called "kintama" or "golden balls," in Japanese) are the source of their supernatural powers. Too bad Mario didn't get a nice super-sized sack when he suited up in his "tanooki suit" (as it was spelled for the English language release of the game.)
ellauri008.html on line 21: KARAVAANI KULKEE play:none">Haukuntaa
ellauri008.html on line 75: räpl ää puhelinta, puhuu siihen:
ellauri008.html on line 139: Paul Austerilla todettiin syöpä joulukuussa 2022, ja hän kuoli keuhkosyövän aiheuttamiin kompl ikaatioihin huhtikuussa 2024. Hän lakkasi runoilemasta 30-vuotiaana. Hänen runoutensa on monimutkaista ja monimutkaista ja palkitsee hitaat ja hitaat, toistuvat lukemat. Austerin runouskausi oli silloin, kun hän "kiinnostui juutalaisten historiasta ja juutalaiskysymyksistä", hän kertoi minulle. "Kolme juutalaista kirjailijaa, joilla oli suuri vaikutus minuun, ihastuivat minuun suuresti: Paul Celan, Edmond Jabès ja Charles Reznikoff. Se sai minut ajattelemaan omaa suhdettani juutalaisuuteen ja juutalaisuuden suhdetta kirjoittamiseen." "Voit olla täysin maallinen juutalainen ja pysyä kiintyneinä historiaan ja jopa tämän uskon filosofiseen perustaan." Että sellasta.
ellauri008.html on line 227: Peopl e do these things, why not someone I know,
ellauri008.html on line 333: Kirkkaana täpl änä ei siemen loista,
ellauri008.html on line 470: He made me feel so natural and very much myself, that I was almost afraid of losing the thrill and wonder of being there, although I was vibrating with intense excitement inside. His eyes under their pent-house lids revealed the suffering and the intensity of his experiences; when he spoke of his work, there came over them a sort of misty, sensuous, dreamy look, but they seemed to hold deep down the ghosts of old adventures and experiences—once or twice there was something in them one almost suspected of being wicked. But then I believe whatever strange wickedness would tempt this super-subtle Pole, he would be held in restraint by an equally delicate sense of honour. In his talk he led me along many paths of his life, but I felt that he did not wish to expl ore the jungle of emotions that lay dense on either side, and that his apparent frankness had a great reserve.
ellauri008.html on line 475: It was wonderful—I loved him & I think he liked me. He talked a great deal about his work & life & aims, & about sother writers. Then we went for a little walk, & somehow grew very intimate. I pl ucked up courage to tell him what I find in his work—the boring down into things to get to the very bottom below the apparent facts. He seemed to feel I had understood him; then I stopped & we just looked into each other's eyes for some time, & then he said he had grown to wish he could live on the surface and write differently, that he had grown frightened. His eyes at the moment expressed the inward pain & terror that one feels him always fighting. Then he talked a lot about Poland, & showed me an album of family photographs of the 60's—spoke about how dream-like all that seems, & how he sometimes feels he ought not to have had any children, because they have no roots or traditions or relations.
ellauri008.html on line 675: depl orable
ellauri008.html on line 681: save peopl e
ellauri008.html on line 749: Man is amazing, but not a masterpiece, he said, keeping his eyes fixed on the glass case. Perhaps the artist was a little mad. Eh? What do you think? Sometimes it seems to me that man is come where he is not wanted, where there is no pl ace for him; for if not, why should he want all the pl ace? Why should he run about here and there making great noise about himself, talking about stars, disturbing the blades of grass? ...
ellauri008.html on line 818: In March 1896 Conrad married an Englishwoman, Jessie George. The coupl e had two sons, Borys and John. The elder, Borys, proved a disappointment in scholarship and integrity. Jessie was an unsophisticated, working-class girl, sixteen years younger than Conrad. To his friends, she was an inexpl icable choice of wife, and the subject of some rather disparaging and unkind remarks. (See Lady Ottoline Morrell's opinion of Jessie in Impressions.)
ellauri008.html on line 830:
play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri008.html on line 842: Stemming from Ernest's treatment as a child, where his overbearing mother put him in dresses (a common practice then, but which his mother took to the extreme, even treating him like a girl), Hemingway had an interesting relationship with gender and his perceptions of it. He probably never engaged in homosexual activity but there can be no doubt that he idolized the male form. There are scenes in almost all of his books but certainly in his major novels where the men are presented in a homerotic manner. Farewell to Arms is kind of an eyebrow raiser. But this is also the man who wrote The Garden of Eden, which was about gender switching. Ernest's 3rd son "ille faciet" Gregory fulfilled his dad's dream. Go read Running With The Bulls. This is written by his son Gregory’s wife Valerie, who had to deal with the fact that her man was a transvestite and died from a botched sex change. Very few peo
pl e know this.
ellauri008.html on line 852: Hans Dominik, Jules Verne, Joseph Conrad, Rudyard Ki
pl ing, Edgar Burroughs, Herbert Strang, Horatio Alger.
ellauri008.html on line 889:
play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri008.html on line 917: Kulttuuriosasto on miehitetty talousliberaaleilla miespuolisilla paskiaisilla. Leffa-arvostelijat sitä yhtä omahyväistä Kaurismäen vihamiestä myötäillen lojaalisti haukkuu vasemmistoleffoja. Mainstream jenkki
pl äjäykset on enemmän niiden mieleen, on niissä arvot oikein ja sydän paikallaan. Saarnakolumneissa työrukkaset kuorossa ylistää yritteliäisyyttä, talouskasvua ja tekniikan ihmeitä. On kaikki hyvin, näillä mennään täysillä kohti ammottavaa mustaa aukkoa. Koneen hissillä pääsette tavaroiden taivaaseen.
ellauri008.html on line 921: HS on Herlinien paska
pl ärä joka turhaan lausuu herrojensa nimeä, ja omaansa.
ellauri008.html on line 1210: niljakkaita sensaatio
pl äjäyksiä,
ellauri008.html on line 1552: vaan markkinatalouden ja netin kautta, erillisinä ku
pl ina.
ellauri008.html on line 1562:
Dupl icity and cunning vs. courage
ellauri008.html on line 1590: political immaturity of the peo
pl e,
ellauri008.html on line 1604: Mutta aika kypsinä ne poimi banaaneja pl antaaseilla, jupisten keskenänsä intiaanikielellä.
ellauri008.html on line 1717: pienten pl antaasipl änttien uusjakoa ja
ellauri008.html on line 1761: Mahtuis melkein sille maapl äntille
ellauri008.html on line 2018: Många rika västländer har uppl evt mer än ett årtionde av ekonomiskt kräftgång. Utropstecken kring klimat och migration fungerar som bensin på lågorna. Bitterheten har slagit rot bland tidigare passiva samhällsskikt, som inte längre godtar långrandiga, invecklade resonemang vare sig enklare lögner från eliten: beslutsfattare, medier, experter, akademiska kretsar och andra välmående vinnare.
ellauri008.html on line 2020: Precis här ligger utmaningen: ett öppet, liberalt överklassvälde värt sitt salt måste tålmodigt utnyttja tolerans med egennyttiga argument och hoppas att liberalt besinnade influencers och eftertänksamma företagare utgår som segrare i formandet av den allmänna opinionen. Censur, stämpl ingar och förbud är bara en del av svaret. (Torsten Hårfager HBL)
ellauri008.html on line 2088: Tripl a
ellauri008.html on line 2158: Lopux Lennon joutuu takas samaan putkeen kuin alussa, cavariccihousuisen kaverinsa seuraan. Päälle tulee paksulti sementtiä ja lasten hopl oppi, joka alkaa haista ruumisojalle. Muotiarkkitehdin ura sakkaa ja lähtee alamäkeä. Jokaisessa pilvessä on hopeareunus. Kaikella on tarkoitus. Olemme osa luojan suurta suunnitelmaa.
ellauri009.html on line 20: LÄNNEN LAKI play:none">Moraalia
ellauri009.html on line 34: Seek not my name. A pl ague consume you, wicked caitiffs left!
ellauri009.html on line 926: Lupaus on osa yhteisestä pl äänistä.
ellauri009.html on line 1468: Arvaa kirjoittajan kotipl aneetta!
ellauri009.html on line 1507: ja tappaminen oikein tukussa tupl a viihdyttävää.
ellauri009.html on line 1613: Kohta käy kultaportti karhukopl an kartanon.
ellauri009.html on line 1792: Kupl at
ellauri009.html on line 1793: Tätä olen usein miettinyt: miten sopii yhteen lämpökuolema ja elämä, entropian laki ja kasvuräjähdys? Toinen vähentää eroja, toinen lisää? Vai lisääkö? Ehkä me ollaan vaan paikallisia eetteripyörteitä. Aurinko on kuuma, avaruus kylmä, me siltä väliltä. Oisko tää paakkuuntuminen vaan paikallinen välivaihe globaalissa tasoittumisessa? Vähänniinkun Suomi viilenee koska maapallo kuumenee? Singulariteettipuuro silottuu pipunoiden kautta? Maailmankaikkeus jäähtyessään kupl ii, kupl at kasvaa ennenkuin pl ätsähtää ja lässähtää.
ellauri009.html on line 1795: Voihan se niinnii olla. Ollaan kupl ia. Omassa kupl assa kukin paisutaan kunnes tulee pl ätsähdys. Ja lässähdys.
ellauri009.html on line 1797: Nyt on pl ätsähtämässä oikein iso kupl a: ihmiskunta tää rupisammakko pullistuu ja lämpenee omassa liemessään, ei malta hypätä pois kylvystä. Pläts. Ja läts.
ellauri011.html on line 20: VERTA JA KULTAA play:none">Mystikkaa
ellauri011.html on line 47: Which, though ´twere wild—as on the pl undered wreck
ellauri011.html on line 229: "Love seeketh not itself to pl ease,
ellauri011.html on line 239: "Love seeketh only Self to pl ease,
ellauri011.html on line 248: Kumiparonit kumipl antaasheilla
ellauri011.html on line 509: In 1974, he and his wife, Gisa, were arrested in Rio de Janeiro, where they were tortured for few days. Though the coupl e was released, his wife left him after this incidence as she suffered from Paranoia.
ellauri011.html on line 533: Be present. Make love. Embrace your pl ant, love it. Make your bed ... someone else's bed. Swim in the ocean. Ask questions. Learn. Know your own worth. Forgive quickly.
ellauri011.html on line 542: ploiri">
ellauri011.html on line 568: The grotesque climax of this portrait comes at a formal dinner which has no bearing on the pl ot (but then padding can become second nature). Some of the guests give him a smile of recognition, 'others merely smile and don't recognise me at all, but pretend to know who I am, because to admit otherwise would be to accept that the world they're living in doesn't exist, and that they are failing to keep up with the things that matter'. Peopl e can be so shallow sometimes.
ellauri011.html on line 571: HS julkaisi 12.09.2019 arvostelun Porsas Pyllerön nuolaisuteoksesta Läski-Röhnö Pahkasika. Mätä-ääninen Ploiri, näppyläinen pl ösö moukka, täys feikki, kupl a kurkussa. Ikuinen Ilta-Pulun toimittaja Juri Turvo nokkii siltä tähteitä molempien uran illansuussa. Arvostelijana toimi laantumuksen äänitorvi Mäntti Hajahder. Kolmas iltatähti siinä pahnanpohjimmaisena.
ellauri011.html on line 612: kuivaa rahaa, niin että pl ussalle
ellauri011.html on line 690: Noita noitalahjoja on 9 kpl , ne löytyy luvusta 1 Kor. 12. Ne on vähän kuin lähetyssaarnaajien tai helluntaiystävien toimenkuvat arkipäivän käännöstyössä, siis käännytyxessä.
ellauri011.html on line 795: Paulo Cohelo on täysi tohelo. Mutta menestynyt sellainen. Hessu Hopo, kauppa-lopo. Apinoiden pl aneetalla kohelo on kunkku. Liika fiksu menis yli hilseen.
ellauri011.html on line 834: And that night, in September 1970, after being expelled from a bar and humiliated by the police, the peopl e there danced and gave thanks to God for a life that was so captivating, so full of unfamiliar things, so captivating.
ellauri011.html on line 849: Keskiluokan hippi ei pääse täpl istään.
ellauri011.html on line 934: - More or less. There is a lot of information: Switzerland, bicycles, the war, a kaleidoscope - could you simpl ify it a bit?
ellauri011.html on line 936: Yeah, keep it simpl e stupid. Say it with a KISS. Kylhä hippityttökin lopulta hiffaa et jos kaikki olis kaiken aikaa matkalla, ketään ei olis kotona laittamassa äijille ruokaa.
ellauri011.html on line 1048: Mut taas kerran tän lavastajan pl agijoijan juoni on täyysin perseestä. Miten muka todistaa onx Villanuevan kylän asukkaat kilttejä vai tuhmia, se tekeekö ne suht pienen ja erittäin epäluotettavan voiton takia henkirikoksen? Enintään se todistaisi tyhmyyttä, tai vielä paremmin, kuinka huono herra Kani on laskuopissa, vaikka nettoo roskakirjoillansa miljoonia.
ellauri011.html on line 1340: He regarded the latter as of the highest importance because dislike and ill opinion force peopl e to conform in their behaviour to social norms, however he didn't consider public opinion as a suitable influence for governments.
ellauri011.html on line 1342: In his 1672 essay On the Original and Nature of Government, William Templ e gave an early formulation of the importance of public opinion. He observed that "when vast numbers of men submit their lives and fortunes absolutely to the will of one, it must be force of custom, or opinion which subjects power to authority".
ellauri011.html on line 1344: Templ e disagreed with the prevalent opinion that the basis of government lay in a social contract and thought that government was merely allowed to exist due to the favour of public opinion.
ellauri011.html on line 1346: An institution of central importance in the development of public opinion, was the coffee-house, which became widespread throughout Europe in the mid-17th century. Although Charles II later tried to suppress the London coffeehouses as "pl aces where the disaffected met, and spread scandalous reports concerning the conduct of His Majesty and his Ministers", the public flocked to them.
ellauri011.html on line 1356: The success of Julie delighted Rousseau; he took pl easure in narrating a story about how a lady ordered a horse carriage to go to an Opera, and then picked up Julie only to continue reading the book till the next morning. So many women wrote to him offering their love that he speculated there was not a single high society woman with whom he would not have succeeded if he wanted to.
ellauri012.html on line 20: EI NAISELTA KUNNIASANAA play:none">Miesasiaa
ellauri012.html on line 83: Ei minuuttiakaan NBA:ssa – Koponen listattiin huonoimmaksi 30. varaukseksi. Ei tullut noobelia. Ei edes minsan verran beliä. Mutta kuten ploiri">Paulo Coelho sanoo: emmä sitä sitten halunnukkaan oikeesti. Hieno lippis kuitenkin.
ellauri012.html on line 223: Aloin kelata koko juttua uudestaan, ja huomasin saman surun painavan kuin sillon kun jutut alko heittää häränpyllyä. Vaikka ajan olisi pitänyt parantaa haavat, riitti nähdä sun kuvaavan niitä kirjeessä, niin ne aukes ja alkoi vuotaa taas. Mikään ei voi pyyhkiä muistista mitä sä (sic) olet kärsinyt sun sepustusten tähden. En voi olla ajattelematta Aberikin ja Lotulfin pirullista kaunaa. Julma setä ja loukattu rakastaja on aina kipeinä mun silmissä. En koskaan unohda mitä vihollisia sun jutut ja mitä kateutta sun kunnia nostatti sua vastaan. En koskaan unohda miten sun maineen, jonka olit kyllä ansainnut, silppus ja räjäytti ilmaan valeuutiset. Eiks sun jumaluusoppi tuomittu poltettavaks? Eiks sua uhattu elinkautisella? Turhaan peruutit noi mielipiteet, mikään ei auttanut, päätettiin et sä olet vääräoppinen! Mistä noi kaks väärää todistajaa syytti sua Sensin kokouksessa? Mitä skandaaleja kaivettiin esiin Parakleteen, sun kappelin nimestä? Mikä myrsky syntyi munkkikopl an joukossa sua vastaan kun kutsuit niitä veljiksi? Tää meidän takaiskujen historia, jonka sä kerrot niin liikuttavasti, sai sydämeni vuotamaan verta. Mun kyynelet, joita en pysty estämään, on tuhrineet puolet kirjeestä; kunpa oiskin putsannet sen kokonaan, ja et mä oisin palauttanut sen sulle siinä kunnossa; sit olisin ollut tyytyväinen et förbin sen; mutta se otettiin multa pois liian pian.
ellauri012.html on line 305: Älä enää ajattele mua, pl iis, minään perustajaisänä tai suurmiehenä; sun kehut ei sovi yhteen mun heikkouteen. Mä oon kurja syntinen, rähmällään tuomarinsa edessä, naama ravassa mä sekoitan kyyneliä maa-ainekseen. Pystytkö näkee mut tässä ja silti pyytää mun rakkautta? Tule, jos kehtaat, ja työnny huiviasussasi mun ja jahven väliin, jokskin väliseinäksi. Tule ja purista musta huokailut ja ajatukset, jotka kuuluis vaan yläkerran kaverille. Auta paholaisia ja toimi niiden välikappaleena. Sä saat kehnon sydämen itkemään sitä kaikkea, sä kyllä tiedät mitä. Eips, vaan peruuta pois ja auta mua pelastumaan. Salli mun välttää kadotus, sitä pyydän sun entisvanhan hellyyden ja meidän yhteisen onnettomuuden nimessä. Suurin rakkauden osoitus on olla näyttämättä sitä; mä puolestani vapautan sut täten kaikista sun valoista ja lupauksista. Ole vaan herran morsian, jolle mä sut lupasin; mä en asetu vastustamaan niin hyvää suunnitelmaa. Mä oon kyl tosi ilonen jos mä menetän sut niin! Sit must tulee oikee kirkonmies ja susta ihan upee abbedissa.
ellauri012.html on line 307: Tyydy tähän näin komeeseen lopputulokseen; tee hyveestäsi malli miehille ja enkeleille. Ole nöyrä lastes edessä, laula ahkerasti kuorossa, pidä kova kuri, lue uutterasti; uhraa jopa vapaa-aika hyötyliikuntaan. Oletko sä saanut viran niin helpolla ettei sun tarvi nähdä yhtään vaivaa? Kun kerta annoit mun käyttää sua hyväksi ja opettaa sulle kiellettyjä juttuja, älä nyt vastusta näitä hyviä neuvoja jotka mulle inspiroi nyt armo ja uskonto. Mun on tunnustettava että tähän asti ajattelin olevani parempi naimisen opettajana kuin uskossa uimisen tai niiden asioiden puimisen. Mun hyvästä supl iikista on ollut pelkkää harmia. Mun sydän, joka juopui hekkumasta, keksi vaan niitä sanoja, jotka sopi siihen tarkoitukseen. Syntisten kuppi kallistuu niin ihku makeasti, että meillä on luontojamme suurta taipumusta maistaa siitä, ei sitä tarvi kahdesti tarjota. Pyhimysten tuoppi taas on täynnä niin pahanmakuista juomaa, että yhtä luonnostaan sitä kammotaan. Ja sit sä ihmettelet miks mä pelkurina tarjoon sitä ensin sulle. Syytä vaan, olet oikeassa, enkä mä voi kyllin ihailla sua et sä menit siihen halpaan. Kanna siksi rohkeasti risti jonka otit niin visusti vastaan. Juo pyhimysten litran tuoppi pohjaan saakka, äläkä kato muhun päin, anna mun juosta sua pakoon noudattaen apostolin (ja sopuleita pakenevan Roope Ankan) käskyä: Karkuun!
ellauri012.html on line 319: Sun on paras tietää, että siitä lähtien kun näin sun täysin omistautuneen vaan mulle, kun näin että olit kaiken rakkauteni arvoinen, kuvittelin etten voisi rakastaa sua enää. Ajattelin että oli aika lopettaa antamasta rakkauden merkkejä, ja tuumasin, että nunnalupausten ansiosta olit nyt taivaan erityisessä suojeluksessa, etkä enää mun akka etkä taakka. Mustasukkaisuuteni näytti kuolleen pois. Pelkkä jumala mun kilpakosijana ei olis iso riski; ja tyynempänä kuin koskaan ennen saatoin pyytää yläkerran kuomaa "ottamaan" sut tyystin "pois" mun silmistä. Mutta aika ei ollut kypsä pyytää sitä niin hätäisesti, eikä mun usko riittänyt sen toteutumiseen. Välttämättömyys ja epätoivo oli mun tointen motiivina, ja siksi se oli taivaalle enemmän loukkaus kuin uhraus. Jumala hylkäsi mun vienon ehdotuksen, ja jatkoi mun rangaistusta jatkamalla sun elämää ja mun tunnesidettä. Nyt mun täytyy kantaa sun lupaushuijauksen taakka pl us sitä edeltäneet tekoseni, ja tulla kidutetuksi päivieni loppuun saakka. Vituiksi meni.
ellauri012.html on line 495: Suomen miekkataksilaivaston taannoinen peräamiraali oli Sapeli-Simonen. Hajoitti Arabian lakon sodan jälkeen poliisikameleilla. Santarmin nagaikka lehtikuvassa näytti sapelilta. Simonen oli vanha norssi. Kalakukkoilija kuten kollegansa, Rautalammin poikia. RUKn luokan priimus, hyvä huutaja. Meriväen aliluutnantti, kouluttautui lakimieheksi. Grynderinä ministeri täytti omat taskut riikin laarista, sai isot sakot kätilöopiston jutusta valtakunnanoikeudessa. Osas isät ennen Kanki-Kaikkostakin, ja sitä kopl aajaa.
ellauri012.html on line 504: Ploven og de to sværd. En bog av Ebbe Reich som jeg fandt på hylden til forkastede bøger. Jeg er pl oven. Ikke lige skarp, og mindre farlig.
ellauri012.html on line 551: Pienille tytöille pitää antaa enemmän pl ussaa kysymyxistä ja epävarmuudesta kuin mielipiteistä, jotta niistä tulee nöyriä.
ellauri012.html on line 624: Après ces instructions, qui doivent tenir la première pl ace, je crois qu’il n’est pas inutile de laisser aux filles, selon leurs loisirs et la portée de leur esprit, la lecture des livres profanes qui n’ont rien de dangereux pour les passions : c’est même le moyen de les dégoûter des comédies et des romans. Donnez-leur donc les histoires grecques et romaines ; elles y verront des prodiges de courage et de désintéressement. Ne leur laissez pas ignorer l’histoire de France, qui à aussi ses beautés ; mêlez celles des pays voisins, et les relations des pays éloignés judicieusement écrites. Tout cela sert à agrandir l’esprit, et à élever l’âme à de grands sentiments, pourvu qu’on évite la vanité et l’affectation.
ellauri012.html on line 628: Je leur permettrais aussi, mais avec un grand choix, la lecture des ouvrages d’éloquence et de poésie, si je voyais qu’elles en eussent le goût, et que leur jugement fût assez solide pour se borner au véritable usage des choses ; mais je craindrais d’ébranler trop les imaginations vives, et je voudrais en tout cela une exacte sobriété : tout ce qui peut faire sentir l’amour, pl us il est adouci et enveloppé, pl us il me paraît dangereux.
ellauri014.html on line 19: ANDALUSIAN SINISUKKA play:none">Rousseauta
ellauri014.html on line 36: Lainasin Pamela piukkapepun kirjastosta. Sen esipuhe oli paksulti alleviivattu ja merkitty huutomerkein. Joku on kai lukenut tän tenttiin - vittuako typeryxet alleviivaa kirjaston kirjoja? ei siitä ole mitään apua! Wäinö mainitsee siinä kiittävään sävyyn Paul Bourgetin. Ai kenet, kysyt ehkä, niin minäkin. Katsoin Wikipediasta. Wannabe-julkkistyrkky viisinkertainen melkein-nobelisti, agnostikko, joka palasi katoliseen uskoon romaanissa Le Discipl e. Se oli Gladstonen mielikirjoja. Russell pelkäsi Gladstonea pikkupoikana. Ei varmaan ollut Russellin mieleinen kirja. Bourget oli ollut sielun hienoudessa edellä ihailijattariansa, Wäiskin mielestä. Samaa ei voinut sanoa Richardsonista, joka ainakin Fieldingin leirissä kuvattiin pieneksi, punakaksi, turhamaiseksi, arkipuheiseksi pikku mieheksi. Tuntuuko jo pientä narsistisen setämiehen hajua? - Asiasta 3:nteen, kuppainen Kasimir Leino kirjoitti kalikkarunon Gladstonen kunniaxi , verraten sen Irlannin kohtelua suomen sortoaikaan.Sellainen HINOA JOHN -vittuilu Paulille tussilla Johnin oveen. No Pohjois-Irlannin Karjalaa ei sentään antanut Gladstone takaisin. Sattui silmiin, kun koitin löytää tietoa Kasimirin kupasta.
ellauri014.html on line 74: I started going to see The Beatles in 1961 when I was 14 and I got quite friendly with them. If they were pl aying out of town they’d give me a lift back home in their van. It was about the same time that I started getting called Polythene Pat. It’s embarrassing really. I just used to eat polythene all the time. I’d tie it in knots and then eat it.
ellauri014.html on line 78: The 256th coupl et of Tirukkural, which was composed at least 2000 years ago, says that "if peopl e do not consume a product or service, then there will not be anybody to suppl y that product or service for the sake of price".
ellauri014.html on line 79: The Tirukkural (திருக்குறள், literally Sacred Verses), or shortly the Kural, is a classic Tamil language text consisting of 1,330 coupl ets or Kurals.
ellauri014.html on line 83: Locke addressed the concept of suppl y and demand as part of a discussion about interest rates in 17th-century England. The phrase "suppl y and demand" was first used by James Denham-Steuart in his Inquiry into the Principl es of Political Economy, published in 1767. Adam Smith used the phrase in his 1776 book The Wealth of Nations.
ellauri014.html on line 89: Pamela; or, Virtue Rewarded is an epistolary novel by English writer Samuel Richardson, a novel which was first published in 1740. It tells the story of a 16-year-old maidservant named Pamela Andrews, whose empl oyer, Mr. B, a wealthy landowner, makes unwanted and inappropriate advances towards her after the death of his mother. Pamela strives to reconcile her strong religious training with her desire for the approval of her empl oyer in a series of letters and, later, journal entries, addressed to her impoverished parents. After various unsuccessful attempts at seduction, a series of sexual assaults, and an extended period of kidnapping, the rakish Mr. B eventually reforms and makes Pamela a sincere proposal of marriage. In the novel's second part, Pamela marries Mr. B and tries to acclimatize to her new position in upper-class society. The full title, Pamela; or, Virtue Rewarded, makes pl ain Richardson's moral purpose. A best-seller of its time, Pamela was widely read but was also criticized for its perceived licentiousness and disregard for class barriers.
ellauri014.html on line 142: play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri014.html on line 156: Henry Fielding riimusti Pamelasta pastissin nimeltä Joseph Andrews, jossa roolit oli vaihtuneet. Joseph oli pyhän kirjan Joosefin kaima ja kohtalotoveri. Sitä ahdisti kiimainen Potifarin vaimo Lady B. Joseph ei kuitenkaan koskaan antanut arvon ladylle, vaan
pl okkas nuoren resuisen neitokaisen nimeltä Fanny.
ellauri014.html on line 164:
Tässä jaksossa runttaan Rousseaun kirjeromaania Julie: la nouvelle Heloise 1761. Richardson kuoli samana vuonna. Ei tarvinnut suuttua Rousseaun pl agiaatista. Vai kuoliko just siihen? Työhypoteesi on että Rousseaukin oli narsistinen setämies.
ellauri014.html on line 181: Sen otti huomaan ammattimaiset katoliset takaisinkäännyttäjät. 15 vuotiaana sen pl okkas 2x vanhempi katolisex just kääntynyt paroonitar, josta tuli sen "Maman". Maman käänsi Jannen katolisex, hemmotteli sitä ja naida napsutteli sitä moneen otteeseen kolmeen pekkaan toisen pojan kaa, parinkin eri pojan vielä. Et semmosta peliä.
ellauri014.html on line 195: Mut takas vielä seeveeseen. Se oli yhen vuoden dipl omaatin sihteerinä Venetsiassa (osas italiaa), josta sai potkut röyhkeydestä. Innostu siellä politiikasta, niistä sosiaalikontrahdeista.
ellauri014.html on line 201: Kolmikymppisenä Sveitsin-Jaakkoo pl okkaa Pariisissa nuoren
ellauri014.html on line 283: Aan der sea pl age
ellauri014.html on line 292: (Euro sich jette op el soil pl eurante. Eura stoppe de escribere und regarde Euro eine bischen worried)
ellauri014.html on line 359: Tän pohjakosketuksen jälkeen Pröö alkaa saarnata pitkäveteisesti vanhan opettajan äänellä, et ei naisten kande opetella mitään muuta kun hyviä tapoja ja hyvää makua, pl us spinetin pimputusta, kaikki kouluaineet voi panna roskixeen.
ellauri014.html on line 368: Tästä suosiosta suoristunut Pröö yltyy vonkaamaan tupl ateholla. Iskä parooni on tulossa kotikäynnille, Julle hermostuu, se tahtoo lähettää Pröön poies silmistä kassan kautta. Pröö hermostuu eikä ota rahoja. Julle hermostuu tupl asti sanoo Pröölle ota ne, se on nyt tupl a tai sulle kuitti. Julle huutaa aivan falsetilla. Mikä on kun ei pysy rehdin kuppi asetilla.
ellauri014.html on line 370: Pröö ottaa fyrkat ja lähtee menee. Kannattipa kursailla, tuli tupl apalkkio. Julie on paronin tytär, parempaa väkeä. Vaikuttaa myös Pröötä fiksummalta vaikkon sitä neljä vuotta nuorempi. Aika tukevasti istuu satulassa, Julkku vie, ope vikisee. Mirri käskee, häntä tottelee.
ellauri014.html on line 473: Siinä sivussa proto-Byron kehuu Juuliaa ihan kupl iksi. Jatkaa siitä minkä tiehensä karkoitettu kotiope jäi. Ja kun se pitää taukoa törkeestä ylistyxestä, Claire jatkaa. Iltalukemista narsistinaisille. Julien vastauskirjeet ihailijakaartille osoittaa et se on nyttemmin omasta erinomaisuudestaan suunnilleen samaa mieltä.
ellauri014.html on line 493: Joka tapauxessa poikaystäviä in spe on monta sitä palvomassa ihan lääpällään, ei tarvize kuin pl okata. Tää on tosi tärkeetä, sillä tässä on hyvän naisten kirjan juonen ydinkysymys: kenet valita? Tumma komea ja tuhma, vai kiltimpi ja siksi vähän tylsempi vaalea, mutta rikas? Vaiko se vanhempi hieno herra joka ymmärtää? Että osaa olla vaikeaa.
ellauri014.html on line 503:
VI-XII Julie torjuu lordin ehdotuxen lähteä Tedin partnerina loordin tiluksille Yorkkiin pehtoorixi. York, of all pl aces, suunnilleen pahin persläpi koko briteissä, saarivaltakunnan Posio, sekopäisen Grahaminkin kotipesä. In your dreams! Pröö pommittaa mankuvilla preiveillä, Julkku vastaa koleerisilla. Barbaari! kaulin heilahtaa. Kiittämätön! annoin rrunsaasti. (2x kolmen vuoden aikana...) Mulla on paljon kurjempaa kuin sulla! Claire osallistuu haukuntaan. Kovaa rähinää puudeleiden kesken.
ellauri014.html on line 521: plaatto">Alaviitteessä R. väittää että Platon on rakastavaisten filosofi, muut ei voi sitä sietää. Hmh. Miten niin sehän oli homo? Aika sietämätön selittäjä Plato on, ja huumoriton myös. Ei se sietänyt runouttakaan. Mut niin on Rusakkokin, naurattaa enintään tahatta, kuten lajitoverinsa Kani. Ehkä rakkaus on vähän niinkuin uskonto, liian vakava asia naurettavaksi, niille jotka on jo uskossa. Idealisti ei voi sietää realistia, eikä toisinpäin.
ellauri014.html on line 624: Quand même ils ne reconnaîtraient pas la présence de la Divinité, comment osent-ils soutenir qu’ils ne font de mal à personne ? Comment prouvent-ils qu’il est indifférent à un père d’avoir des héritiers qui ne soient pas de son sang ; d’être chargé peut-être de pl us d’enfants qu’il n’en aurait eu, et forcé de partager ses biens aux gages de son déshonneur sans sentir pour eux des entrailles de père ?
ellauri014.html on line 700: Julle maxaa takaisin kehumalla Wollea. Wolle on lähes viisikymppinen mut käyttämättömänä hyvin säilynyt, pohjoismaisen oloinen kiltti pikku kylmiö, varmaan harppisaku, hiljaisempi versio Kimmo Koskenniemestä, yhtä besserwisseri. Yhtä armoitettu humoristi myös. Julle ei ehkä ole juuri onnen kukkuloilla, mut ainakin on niillä pätäkkää, talouspuoli kunnossa. Samaa ei voi sanoa kotiopesta. Julle detaljoi tarkasti tätä aineellista onnea. Wolmarilla riittää muonaa rrunsaasti omille joukoille, pl us muru rikkaan pöydältä kerjäläisille. Tää on tärkeää, sillä JJ on veteraani kuokkija, ammattiparasiitti, usein nähty ilmainen ruokavieras paremmissa perheissä. Alaviitteessä se valittaa piheistä isännistä, jotka tarjoo murua vasta iltapäivällä, nähtyään ettei sveizari muuten lähde kulumallakaan. Rusakko muuten nakersi viimeisen porkkanansa sellaisilla ilmaiskesteillä. Sai slaagin kesken ylensyöntiä.
ellauri014.html on line 716: Pröö sanoo et ok, ehkä on keskimäärin hyvä asia et homo sapiensit dallaa tällä pallolla (must se on hyvin hyvin kiistanalaista), se (Pröö) on kuiteskin erilainen kuin muut, siihen sattuu. Paskanmarjat, kaikki homot on identtisiä kuin 10G marjaa. Nälkävuoden pituisen perustelujakson jälkeen Pröö ehdottaa, että Ted ja Ralph tekisivät Clasu-Ebba tyyppisen tupl aseppukun.
ellauri014.html on line 767: Wolmari maxaa minimipalkkaa päiväläisille pl us bonusta hyville duunareille kutenkin niin, että pääsee aina voitolle. Se on preussilainen tarkan markan poika, käy duunareita observoimassa monta kertaa päivässä. Julle toimii huolehtivana komppanian äitinä, maxaa kilteimmile joskus kourallisen hiluja.
ellauri014.html on line 785: Jullen talossa palvelusväki tietää sen, rouva tekee sen niille käytöxellään erittäin selväksi. Järjestys pysyy hyvänä, tavat sievinä, junat ei aja väärään tunneliin, ei seiso käkikellon viisari vika aikaan. Rusoon tupl a kaxinaismoraali on niin paxua, et sen päällä pysyisi pyyleväkin vapahtaja pinnalla.
ellauri014.html on line 893: Toinen pikku erimielisyys koskee romaanikerjäläisiä. Pröö ei heittäis lanttia katukerjureiden pahvikuppiin (Mooooi! Iso numero!), se on rahaa pois kotimaisten työttömien toimeentulotuesta. Wollella on ammattikerjurien tippaamiseen perustelu, joka on Jullen mielestä ihan mahtava: kerjuu on ammatti siinä missä komeljanttarin, molemmat pyrkii viihdyttämään rikkaita saadakseen massia. Jos köyhä onnistuu surkealla tarinalla hetkeksi hauskuttamaan antajaa, kyllähän sekin on palkkansa ansainnut yhtä lailla kuin joku näyttelijä. Turhanpäiväsempiähän vielä on teatterit ja muut paheelliset viihdepl äjäyxet.
ellauri014.html on line 940: Je ne souffrirai pas non pl us que mes enfants se mêlent dans la conversation des gens raisonnables, et s’imaginent sottement y tenir leur rang comme les autres, quand on y souffre leur babil indiscret. Je veux qu’ils répondent modestement et en peu de mots quand on les interroge, sans jamais parler de leur chef, et surtout sans qu’ils s’ingèrent à questionner hors de propos les gens pl us âgés qu’eux auxquels ils doivent du respect.
ellauri014.html on line 985: Sit seuraa haukotuttava viihteellinen idyllipl äjäys patriarkkafarmin viininkorjuusta. Kaikki on niin rustiikkia niin rustiikkia. Rotinkaisten maalaista meininkiä ihastellaan.
ellauri014.html on line 1035: Le surlendemain de notre arrivée, je le vis entrer dans ma chambre avec une contenance ferme et grave, et tenant une lettre à la main. Je m’écriai : « La marquise est morte ! ─ Plût à Dieu ! reprit-il froidement, il vaut mieux n’être pl us que d’exister pour mal faire. Mais ce n’est pas d’elle que je viens vous parler ; écoutez-moi. » J’attendis en silence.
ellauri014.html on line 1037: « Milord, me dit-il, en me donnant le saint nom d’ami, vous m’apprîtes à le porter. J’ai rempl i la fonction dont vous m’avez chargé ; et vous voyant prêt à vous oublier, j’ai dû vous rappeler à vous-même. Vous n’avez pu rompre une chaîne que par une autre. Toutes deux étaient indignes de vous. S’il n’eût été question que d’un mariage inégal, je vous aurais dit : Songez que vous êtes pair d’Angleterre, et renoncez aux honneurs du monde, ou respectez l’opinion. Mais un mariage abject !… vous !… Choisissez mieux votre épouse. Ce n’est pas assez qu’elle soit vertueuse, elle doit être sans tache… La femme d’Edouard Bomston n’est pas facile à
ellauri014.html on line 1040: Alors il me remit la lettre. Elle était de Laure. Je ne l’ouvris pas sans émotion. « L’amour a vaincu, me disait-elle ; vous avez voulu m’épouser ; je suis contente. Votre ami m’a dicté mon devoir ; je le rempl is sans regret. En vous déshonorant, j’aurais vécu malheureuse ; en vous laissant votre gloire, je crois la partager. Le sacrifice de tout mon bonheur à un devoir si cruel me fait oublier la honte de ma jeunesse. Adieu, dès cet instant je cesse d’être en votre pouvoir et au mien. Adieu pour jamais. O Edouard ! ne portez pas le désespoir dans ma retraite ; écoutez mon dernier vœu. Ne donnez à nulle autre une pl ace que je n’ai pu rempl ir. Il fut au monde un cœur fait pour vous, et c’était celui de Laure. »
ellauri014.html on line 1049: Alors, s’approchant avec transport, il me dit en me serrant contre sa poitrine : « Ami, je lis, dans le sort commun que le ciel nous envoie, la loi commune qu’il nous prescrit. Le règne de l’amour est passé, que celui de l’amitié commence ; mon cœur n’entend pl us que sa voix sacrée, il ne connaît pl us d’autre chaîne que celle qui me lie à toi. Choisis le séjour que tu veux habiter : Clarens, Oxford, Londres, Paris ou Rome ; tout me convient, pourvu que nous y vivions ensemble. Va, viens où tu voudras, cherche un asile en quelque lieu que ce puisse être, je te suivrai partout : j’en fais le serment solennel à la face du Dieu vivant, je ne te quitte pl us qu’à la mort. »
ellauri014.html on line 1066: EURO: Ich was sozzialisto autretime, aber vandag no convient nicht pl us! Ich esse inderfact eine renommado swizzero banquiero!
ellauri014.html on line 1068: EURO: Tempos esse mucho hards por swizzeros banquieros! Nos habe van judaicos goden dentes bijna nicht pl us! Und el reciclagio van dirty denieros no paya pl us zo gut als in der past!
ellauri014.html on line 1069: Euro blaste in pl euros, los eyos sprinkelend van tears.
ellauri014.html on line 1071: EURA: No pl eure comme dat! Wat can ich make om toi helpe?
ellauri014.html on line 1107: It´s very funny --- every time I talk to peopl e, it´s like, "Oh, yeah, definitely quality of life over quantity of life." But when push comes to shove, it´s really quantity of life. "I might be a little more confused, but I´ll take that extra year!"
ellauri014.html on line 1131: Alaviitteessä R. haukkuu kaikkia hihhuleita hulluixi, kylmää kyytiä saa Jullen peukuttamat pietistit pl us metodistit, husilaiset ja jansenistit. Ne ottaa viisasten kirjan liian kirjaimellisesti ja antavat sen naisten, näsien ja muiden näsäviisaiden ize lehteiltäväksi. Ei se kuulu niille, se on tarkoitettu asiantuntijoille. Ei pyhä kirja ole mitään vitun izehoito-opas.
ellauri014.html on line 1165: No pappiin tää uppoo kuin veizi voihin, se antaa apl odeita seisaallaan, siinä ja siinä ettei se heittäydy Jullen jalkoihin siunausta vastaanottamaan. Tää on tosi upee kuolema, se uhoo, ihan parhautta, saisinx mä ottaa tän videolle ja näyttää mallix mun muille pokille!? Mikäs siinä, sanoo Julle, älä pidä kiirettä, mullakaan ei nyt ole tässä muita kiireitä. Pastori jää sankkaan kazomoon kai nähdäxeen, esiintyykö senkin nimi lopputexteissä ja kuinka isolla.
ellauri014.html on line 1190: Julle kehuu Pröönkin moraalia kupl ixi, vähän niinkuin puolustellen izeään. Kukaan muu ei ole täysin vakuuttunut.
ellauri014.html on line 1206: « Voyez donc, continuait-elle, à quelle félicité je suis parvenue. J’en avais beaucoup ; j’en attendais davantage. La prospérité de ma famille, une bonne éducation pour mes enfants, tout ce qui m’était cher rassemblé autour de moi ou prêt à l’être. Le présent, l’avenir, me flattaient également ; la jouissance et l’espoir se réunissaient pour me rendre heureuse. Mon bonheur monté par degrés était au comble ; il ne pouvait pl us que déchoir ; il était venu sans être attendu, il se fût enfui quand je l’aurais cru durable. Qu’eût fait le sort pour me soutenir à ce point ? Un état permanent est-il fait pour l’homme ?
ellauri014.html on line 1207: Non, quand on a tout acquis, il faut perdre, ne fût-ce que le pl aisir de la possession qui s’use par elle.
ellauri014.html on line 1213: Plus on vit, pl us on aime à vivre, même sans jouir de rien : j’aurais eu l’ennui de la vie et la terreur de la mort, suite ordinaire de la vieillesse.
ellauri014.html on line 1264: Nylyään puhutaan setäselittämisestä eli manspl ainingista eli spl einauxesta, kun valta-asemassa oleva opettavaisesti paasaa ja samalla vaientaa alistetut ja heidän näkökulmansa. Ei kai Latessa ole ripaus setäselittäjää? Se käy mielessä.
ellauri014.html on line 1311: BC Carlson esseessään Rätten: ett rättsteoretiskt försök pitää tärkeenä, että raastuvan tuomarit (kuten Poju ize) tulkkaa tolkun miehinä lain kirjainta, sillä meiningillä laista vasta tulee oikeutta. Laki ja profeetat, pl us vähän evankeliumia, se on siinä.
ellauri014.html on line 1359: Meemit on lisääntyneet ja lisääntyy kautta aikojen termiittiapinoiden parasiittinä. Nää apinat on niiden itioemiä siinä missä geenien. Joku voisi mälistä: eihän meemejä ole olemassa, ne on vaan aivokummituxia, eikä niillä ole izenäistä älyä. Ensimmäiseen vastaus on sama kuin Sokrateen: sielu on vaan harmoniaa soittimessa, mutta kyllä sitä silti sopii kopioida, kopioston luvalla. Eikä sen kummempaa älyä ole genomillakaan, on vaan monimutkaisuutta, jolla se koittaa vastata kompl eksin ympäristön häiriöihin. Äly ja monimutkaisuus on oikeasti ympäristössä, aivot on sen kalpee heijastus, pikku muurahainen löytää reittinsä sieltä missä sen taivallus on helpointa.
ellauri014.html on line 1511: But an air of mystery surrounds Marino´s life, especially the various times he spent in prison; one of the arrests was due to procuring an abortion for a certain Antonella Testa, daughter of the mayor of Napl es, but whether she was pregnant by Marino or one of his friends is unknown; the second conviction (for which he risked a capital sentence) was due to the poet´s forging episcopal bulls in order to save a friend who had been involved in a duel.
ellauri014.html on line 1512: He remained the reference point for Baroque poetry as long as it was in vogue. In the 18th and 19th centuries, while being remembered for historical reasons, he was regarded as the source and exempl ar of Baroque "bad taste".
ellauri014.html on line 1531: Tutta l´arte del Marini consiste nella forma, nella pura espressione; la sua poesia è scarsa di pensiero e di sentimento e quel poco che vi si trova è - come osserva il De Sanctis - privo di serietà. Quel ripetere, quel girare e rigirare la medesima idea presentandocela sotto aspetti diversi è una prova della povertà di pensiero cui il poeta suppl isce con un calore veramente straordinario d´ immaginazione. Ancor più palese è il difetto del sentimento: egli non sente quel che canta; non ha fede in quel mondo da cui prende i fantasmi dell´arte sua. Vuol esser poeta religioso, patriottico, morale e riesce falso e freddo perchè in lui non vi è il sentimento della religione, della patria e della morale. Solo nel genere erotico eccelle il Marini, ma non sarebbe esatto dire ch´egli abbia il vero sentimento dell´amore. Il suo piuttosto è senso erotico. Non è la donna che suscita i suoi sospiri, ma la femmina; non è Beatrice, non è Laura, che suscitano nell´anima del poeta il fuoco soave di una passione divina, ma è la procace Lilla che con la sua carne odorosa eccita il senso del Marini e gl´ ispira i versi degli Amori notturni e dei Trastulli estivi, ove il naturalismo più crudo è espresso in una forma spirante l´estrema voluttà dei sensi. Le liriche erotiche del nostro autore sono tutto un poema in cui si fa l´apoteosi del piacere sensuale. Il Marini non analizza i suoi sentimenti e non mostra i vari atteggiamenti del suo spirito sotto l´azione d´amore, ma s´indugia nel rappresentarci la bellezza pl astica delle sue amanti. I suoi madrigali e i suoi sonetti sono tanti brevissimi inni al pallore, al neo, alle chiome erranti, alla treccia ricamata di perle, ai pendenti, allo specchio, all´ago, alla bocca, al seno, al velo, al guanto, al ventaglio della sua donna; sono tanti quadretti in cui l´amante è sorpresa durante il bagno, dinanzi allo specchio, mentre si pettina, in carrozza, al giunco dei dadi; le sue canzoni sono superbe sinfonie dedicate al bacio e all´ampl esso in cui culmina, per un istante, la passione carnale del poeta. La carne e il senso regnano sovrani nell´Adone e fremono di voluttà sotto il velo tenue e mal messo dell´allegoria e sotto l´ipocrisia del fine morale.
ellauri014.html on line 1557: ... But more importantly, these surroundings put Marino in direct contact with the natural philosophy of Della Porta and the philosophical systems of Giordano Bruno and Tommaso Campanella. While Campanella himself was to oppose "Marinism" (though not attacking it directly), this common speculative background should be borne in mind with its important pantheistic (and thus neo-pagan and heterodox) impl ications, to which Marino would remain true all his life and expl oit in his poetry, obtaining great success amongst some of the most conformist thinkers on the one hand while encountering continual difficulties because of the intellectual content of his work on the other.
ellauri014.html on line 1569: The Cambridge History of Italian Literature thought him to be "one of the greatest Italian poets of all time". He is considered the founder of the school of Marinism, later known as Secentismo (17th century) or Marinismo (19th century), characterised by its use of extravagant and excessive conceits.[2] Marino´s conception of poetry, which exaggerated the artificiality of Mannerism, was based on an extensive use of antithesis and a whole range of wordpl ay, on lavish descriptions and a sensuous musicality of the verse, and enjoyed immense success in his time, comparable to that of Petrarch before him.
ellauri014.html on line 1595: In 1615 he left Turin and moved to Paris, where he remained until 1623, honoured by the court and admired by French literary circles. He returned to Italy in triumph and died in Napl es in 1625.[5]
ellauri014.html on line 1621: In Adone, Marino quotes and rewrites passages from Dante´s Divine Comedy, Ariosto, Tasso and the French literature of the day. The aim of these borrowings is not pl agiarism but rather to introduce an erudite game with the reader who must recognise the sources and appreciate the results of the revision. Marino challenges the reader to pick up on the quotations and to enjoy the way in which the material has been reworked, as part of a conception of poetic creation in which everything in the world (including the literature of the past) can become the object of new poetry. In this way, Marino also turns Adone into a kind of poetic encyclopaedia, which collects and modernises all the previous productions of human genius.
ellauri014.html on line 1703: Or columbines, in purpl e dressed, tai akileijat violetihtavat
ellauri014.html on line 1728: But granted these are different poems, we are left with the curious problem of where Montgomery found the Alpine Path poem. Surprisingly, after reading a dozen or so academic articles on Emily of New Moon and Montgomery’s vocation as an author–as well as a coupl e of good biographies–scholars have not pinned down the reference. After an extensive internet search, it seems to me that blogger Faith Elizabeth Hough may have begun to work it out. She includes the longer version of the poem here:
ellauri014.html on line 1758: The weary way make pl ain. läpiveto-ohjetta mä hapuilen.
ellauri014.html on line 1827: Yet not to thine eternal resting-pl ace
ellauri014.html on line 1837: In majesty, and the compl aining brooks
ellauri014.html on line 1842: The pl anets, all the infinite host of heaven,
ellauri014.html on line 1861: Their mirth and their empl oyments, and shall come
ellauri014.html on line 1877: About him, and lies down to pl easant dreams.
ellauri015.html on line 22:
KONNAT KUKKIVAT HIRSIPUUSSA play:none">Estetiikkaa
ellauri015.html on line 523: Uneksinko mä jossain ku
pl assa.
ellauri015.html on line 651: Huonoa laskentoa, hyvää su
pl iikkia
ellauri015.html on line 679: Ainoa hyvä puoli tässä ajassa on että selaus on nopeeta, kuvaa voi vaihtaa määrättömästi, morffata eri ikonien välillä. Jos viittii. Useimmat onttopäät viihtyy vaan ahtaassa ku
pl assa, eikä opi mitään, jämähtää vaan vielä pahemmin juoxuhautoihin. Ja huutelee sieltä törkeyxiä somessa, kurnuttavat konnat kukin omasta lammesta.
ellauri015.html on line 687: Pariisilainen johtaja, Jacques Tatin oloinen rusetti kaulassa kusetti naisia Seinen rannalla, pyllistytti niitä po
pl arin takana ja otti kuvia, juotettuaan niille kahvissa nesteenpoistolääkettä.
ellauri015.html on line 831: Eilenbergerin kirja on pannukakku, sanoisi Oiva Ketonen jos eläisi. Jälkijättöinen asiantuntematon räpellys Benjaminista, Cassirerista , Wittgensteinista ja Heideggeristä, viime vuosisadan alun nimettömistä mitättömyyxistä
pl us Ludista, joka sekin kyllä on pahasti ylimainostettu. Reportteriluuskan kolmannen käden turaus siitä on vielä asiantuntemattomampi ja vetelämpi. Lämmitetään ikivanhaa viime vuosituhantista kinaa analyyttisten anglosaxien ja niitäkin anaalisempien sakemannifilosofien välillä. Oisko siinä vähän revanssin makua, sakemanni kaivautumassa esiin pommikuopista. Tästä mannerlaattojen välisestä railosta on nyt muutenkin tullut luetux vuosikymmeniä vanhoja historiikkeja, Eskin ja Maken pamflettien muodossa. ilmeisesti tääkin riita pitää lämmittää joka 20s vuosi kuin joku roiskeläppävalmispizza mikroaaltouunissa.
ellauri015.html on line 842: Airot vääntyy luokille, kokka kohisee. Enpä ole ennen nähnyt soutuvenettä joka nousee
pl aaniin. Taisi tulla Päijänne-soudun pikamatkan ennätys.
ellauri015.html on line 1084: Janis Jo
pl in.
ellauri015.html on line 1170: Sodan jälkeen Leskinen oli opettajana Närpiössä, Pyhäjärvellä ja Kiuruveden Luupuvedellä. Kiuruvedellä ollessaan hän kirjoitti myös ensimmäisen romaaninsa Ehtoona sitten raukee turhaan… sekä kaksi seuraavaa teosta. Leskinen oli mukana myös nuorisoseura- ja seuranäyttämötoiminnassa. Vuonna 1955 Leskinen perheineen muutti Kuopioon, jossa hän toimi opettajana Puijon ja Haapaniemen kouluissa. Leskisellä oli kuitenkin edelleen Tuulentupa-niminen kesäpaikka Luupuvedellä. Siellä oli sitten mukavaa, tietäisittepä. Kuopiossa Leskinen jatkoi kirjoittamistaan, mihinkäs se leopardi pääsee tä
pl istään, ja hänen esikoisnäytelmänsä Läpikäymälä kantaesitys oli Kuopion yhteiskoulussa lokakuussa 1962. Muutamaa vuotta myöhemmin Leskinen voitti näytelmällä Kumikakkuja Kuopion näytelmäkilpailun.
ellauri016.html on line 21:
LLEGAN LOS COJONES play:none">Keljuilua
ellauri016.html on line 34:
play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri016.html on line 226: Ja tuonne radan varteen yötä päivää auki häärääviä Eisengaardeja, kylmän keltaisin valoin valaistuja termiittipesiä, mamuja kokoavia häliseviä tripl a malleja.
ellauri016.html on line 277: Mut hei: jos Fernando menettää Mersun se menettää myös pankin, ja jää Donald Trumpin panttivangiksi. Mersusta voi saada lisää lapsia, jos se säilyy elolle, jos tarvitaan. Sitäpaizi jos lapsi kuolee, Mersusta saa halutessa eron ilman seurauxia, ja voi valita tilalle Alejandran pl us tilan puolikkaan. Spoileri: Fernando valizee Mersun ilman lisävarusteita. Äiti, joka on sentään nainen, hyväxyy valinnan. Miehille se on käsittämätön: lapsi on sukua, äiti ei, pankki on sentään aina pankki, ja akkojahan on lisää joka oxalla. Erät 6-0 meemeille. Pallo, erä ja ottelu moraliteetille.
ellauri016.html on line 340: Helssingin kaapunti suunnittelee tosissaan kiipeilytelineen rakentamista apinoille suurten urheilumenestysten varalle, esim potkupallisarjaan mukaan pääsy näyttää riittävän sellaisexi. Voitto maailman rikkaimmasa maasta Luxemburgista. Vauzivauz. Rintakarvattomat balttinaamat kaljahuuruissa heittää paidat pois ja kiipeileee yösydännä toistensa ja Havis Amandan pazasparan niskassa. Pazaasta teetettäisiin joku kestävämpi pomppulinnaversio, ja alkuperäinen pantas suojaan johkin varastoon tai museoon. Kauppatorin rannassa on jo maailmanpyörä ja sauna. Nyt sitten hullaantumisteline. Pian on koossa koko hopl oppi. Kuka tarvii enää Linnanmäkeä.
ellauri016.html on line 552: Snobbery surfaced more strongly as the structure of the society changed, and the bourgeoisie had the possibility to imitate aristocracy.[citation needed] Snobbery appears when elements of culture are perceived as belonging to an aristocracy or elite, and some peopl e (the snobs) feel that the mere adoption of the fashion and tastes of the elite or aristocracy is sufficient to include someone in the elites, upper classes or aristocracy.[citation needed]
ellauri016.html on line 554: However, a form of snobbery can be adopted by someone not a part of that group; a pseudo-intellectual, a celebrity worshipper, and a poor person idolizing money and the rich are types of snobs who do not base their snobbery on their personal attributes.[citation needed] Such a snob idolizes and imitates, if possible, the manners, worldview, and lifestyle of a classification of peopl e to which they aspire, but do not belong, and to which they may never belong (wealthy, famous, intellectual, beautiful, etc.).[citation needed]
ellauri016.html on line 562: Le snob est aussi bien ce pétit jeune homme hirsute qui appl audit avec une frénesie trop manifeste pour être sincère une pièce d'avant-garde boudée par le grand public, que ce monsieur décoré devant qui se multipl ient les courbettes qui vient assister à la première d'une piece promise au succès; il est aussi bien ce petit gandin qui qui cherche à pl acer un mot dans une conversation entre Altesses que ce gentilhomme à monocle qui, d'un air ennuyé et condescendant, consent à lui addresser quelques paroles indifférentes. Mais ce fluidité meme du mot assura son heureuse developpement.
ellauri016.html on line 568: Read on for a list of 14 of the biggest snobs in the business. These entertainers have long ago lost touch with the average John or Jane Doe and beyond that, have displ ayed rotten attitudes, selfishness, conceit, and a level of arrogance that almost has to be seen to be believed.
ellauri016.html on line 576: Attitude sociale et intellectuelle de l'homme qui, sous l'effect d'un amor-propre vaniteux et d'une volonté de distinction fiduciaire, renonce à l'être du paraître et, sans se préoccuper de développer une personnalité authentique, reconnaìt une hiérarchie imaginaire dans laquelle il veut progresser, en utilisant autrui et notamment ceux que l'opinion pl ace au sommet de cette hiérarchie comme reference de sa valeur fictive.
ellauri016.html on line 691: VIDEO
ellauri016.html on line 715: Got no pl ace to call your home
ellauri016.html on line 774: Drake's reluctance to perform live or be interviewed contributed to his lack of commercial success. He suffered from depression and insomnia, topics often reflected in his lyrics. After compl eting Pink Moon in 1972, he withdrew from live performance and recording, retreating to his parents' home in rural Warwickshire. On 25 November 1974, at the age of 26, Drake died from an overdose of amitriptyline, a prescribed antidepressant.
ellauri016.html on line 780: In 1999, "Pink Moon" was used in a Volkswagen commercial, boosting Drake's US album sales from about 6,000 copies in 1999 to 74,000 in 2000. The LA Times saw it as an exampl e of how, following the consolidation of US radio stations, previously unknown music was finding audiences through advertising. Fans used the filesharing software Napster to circulate digital copies of Drake's music; according to the Atlantic, "The chronic shyness and mental illness that made it hard for Drake to compete with 1970s showmen like Elton John and David Bowie didn't matter when his songs were being pulled one by one out of the ether and pl ayed late at night in a dorm room." In November 2014, Gabrielle Drake published a biography of her brother. Over the following years, Drake's songs appeared in soundtracks of "quirky, youthful" films such as The Royal Tenenbaums, Serendipity and Garden State. Made to Love Magic, an album of outtakes and remixes released by Island Records in 2004, far exceeded Drake's lifetime sales. In 2017, Kele Okereke cited Pink Moon as an influence on his third solo album Fatherland. Other contemporary artists influenced by Drake include José González, Bon Iver, Iron & Wine, Alexi Murdoch and Philip Selway of Radiohead.
ellauri016.html on line 855: vanhasta pipl iasta 1642 saman säkeen suomexi:
ellauri016.html on line 879: Juha Suoranta is a Finnish social scientist, and public intellectual. He is currently Professor in Adult Education at the University of Tampere. Previously he worked as Professor of Education at the University of Lapl and, and Professor of Adult Education at the University of Joensuu.
ellauri016.html on line 931: Vastaanottokeskuxen johto huomauttaa: ensisijainen tehtävämme ei ole kotouttaa, kerta mahdollisimman moni näistä veijareista on määrä palauttaa. Kotoutus kuuluu kunnille pl us niille onnekkaille jotka ei hujahda läpi meidän pöntöstä vaan jää useammankin vedon jälkeen tänne kellumaan. Meidän tehtävä on varastoida, ja teemme sen nyt noin 40 euron taksalla per pää ja päivä. Ei hullumpaa, kustannustehokasta.
ellauri016.html on line 945: Juhixella on käytännön parannusehdotuxia. Odotustilojen mamuja vois aktivoida sijoittamalla niihin lisää polkupyöriä, ompelukoneita ja askarteluvehkeitä. Ne vois tehdä kuvaelmia kuntalaisten kanssa, vaikka tiernapojat, nuorisotalo mamula ja papula. Hoo jos minä olen musta, olen minä monilta kaivattu. Yksi herra ja kuningas murijaanein maasta. Kenkäpl ankkiakin säästyisi. Ne vois syödä yhteisessä pöydässä toistensa pöperöitä niinkuin Helsingin leipäjonolaiset. Niillä vois olla laajakaista, jolla ne pääsis pelailemaan ja lukemaan al-qaidan uutiset ja isiksen blogia. Tää valmistais niitä irakilaiseen arkeen ja työelämään.
ellauri016.html on line 972: Kiitti luonnonvaroista, tässois pyssyjä, selvittäkää te kaverit nyt loput, täällä alkaa olla liika kuuma valkoiselle miehelle. Taakka siirtyy ikävä kyllä nyt takas teille. Mut pysykää siellä, älkää hemmetissä tupatko meille, me autetaan meluummin siellä, rahoitetaan Turkin Mäntylöitä. (Tää koskee etenkin perheitä. Muutama halpa bussikuski ja kebaabikokki olkoon menneeksi, pl us käymälähygieenikkoja.)
ellauri016.html on line 1100: Inarinjärven syvyyttä ei tunneta. Kohta tiedetään, kun sinne tulee hotellikompl exi, joka kuvista päättäen on vähintäinkin yhtä syvältä.
ellauri017.html on line 21: Pellon sulttaaniplay:none">Paasausta
ellauri017.html on line 38: - Haluan käydä näyttämässä myös avaruuden demareille että olen paljon isompi luonnossa kuin lehtikuvissa. - Avaruuden demareille? Onko sielläkin demareita? Eikös humanoidit ole sellaisia Mauri Pekkarisen näköisiä pieniä vihreitä miehiä? - Mitä vielä, Mars on vaaleanpunainen pl aneetta. Kansalaiskeräyxellä on saatu ennätysajassa jo kokoon mulle menolipun hinta.
ellauri017.html on line 94: Barbadosuikkarit (Laurilla vihreät ja Wokulla keltaiset) kuluivat sittemmin kovassa käytössä kymmenet vuodet, ne muuttui vähitellen molemmat ruskeixi Sysmän Bad Spotin mutapl otussa ja hapertui lopulta päältä. Barbadospyyhe on vielä hyvässä hapessa, ainakin paremmassa kuin pyllyvaon kohdalta hiutunut, halennut ja kuuppeloitu Olavin pyyhe tai Domus Academica, joka täyttää kohtapuoliin 60. Merkkipäiviä se viettänee paikattuna perhepiirissä kuin prinssi Andrew.
ellauri017.html on line 168: Jeffrey Goldberg, I attempt to make a good faith effort to understand peopl e's beliefs. Answered Apr 25, 2017
ellauri017.html on line 202: In pl ain words, which comes first? crap or pee?
ellauri017.html on line 458: Leonid, född 1872-04-26 i Moskva. Student därst. Examina för inträde vid universitetets i Moskva medicinska fakultet 1894 och 1895. Legitimerad läkare 1898-11-12 med dipl om av 1899-01-28. Tjänsteman över stat vid medicinska departementet av ryska inrikesministeriet 1902-03-12. Titulärråds grad 1906-03-23 med tur från 1902-01-14. Kollegieassessor 1906-12-29 med tur från 1905-01-14. Avsked 1907-01-31. Läkare över stat vid Föreningen S:t Troitska barmhärtighetssystrars ambulatoriska sjukhus i S:t Petersburg. RRS:tStO3kl 1914-05-28. Direktör för elektro-vattenkuranstalten i nämnda stad. Gift 1905-09-03 i Luga med Elisabet Feodosjev, född 1885-01-17 i S:t Petersburg, dotter av bergsingenjören, generalmajoren Grigori Petrovitj Feodosjev och Catharina Nikolajevna Sibin. Boken vaikenee Leonidin myöhemmistä huuhaatoimista Gurdijeffin tilalla.
ellauri017.html on line 462: In October 1922, Mansfield moved to Georges Gurdjieff's Institute for the Harmonious Development of Man in Fontainebleau, France, where she was put under the care of Olgivanna Lazovitch Hinzenburg (who later married Frank Lloyd Wright). As a guest rather than a pupil of Gurdjieff, Mansfield was not required to take part in the rigorous routine of the institute, but she spent much of her time there with her mentor, Alfred Richard Orage, and her last letters inform Murry of her attempts to appl y some of Gurdjieff's teachings to her own life. Mansfield suffered a fatal pulmonary haemorrhage in January 1923, after running up a flight of stairs.
ellauri017.html on line 597: In a Cartesian coordinate system, the origin is the point where the axes of the system intersect. The origin divides each of these axes into two halves, a positive and a negative semiaxis. Points can then be located with reference to the origin by giving their numerical coordinates—that is, the positions of their projections along each axis, either in the positive or negative direction. The coordinates of the origin are always all zero, for exampl e (0,0) in two dimensions and (0,0,0) in three.
ellauri017.html on line 609: In Euclidean geometry, the origin may be chosen freely as any convenient point of reference. Jokainen meistä on oman maailmansa napa, ja voi siihen tuijottaa, se on itsekullakin yhtä onnistunut ja ainutlaatuinen kuin toisilla. Napanöyhtää on jokaiselle sama määrä suotu syntyessä, vaikkei päivä paistakaan yhtä ipl akasti joka puosta loppupeleissä.
ellauri017.html on line 611: The origin of the compl ex pl ane can be referred as the point where real axis and imaginary axis intersect each other. In other words, it is the compl ex number zero.
ellauri017.html on line 612: Tämän ajatuksen teologinen tulkinta on suoraviivainen, vaikka kuulostaakin kompl eksilta. Me ollaan täällä reaalisella akselilla, taivaan porukat on imaginaarisia.
ellauri017.html on line 885: Uudempia uutisia: homohaawisto on tullut ulos kaapista, maireen naaman takaa luihu konna paljastuu. Riistää lapset Isis-äideiltä kuten ennusteli Jesaja, ja potkii ulos dipl omaatin kun se ei suostu syntipukixi. Hemmetti, menköön ite helwettijn karvalakkipuolelle. Kärpästen herra, wesiculju, sen perseessä saisi käwäistä häwityxen luudalla.
ellauri017.html on line 1121: Jumala vahvisti Jeesuksen opetuksen olevan totta siten, että moni nuha parani, kuolleita nousi ylös kuin sieniä ja riivaajahenkiä ajettiin ulos taivaasta, jossa ne oli olleet ranskalaisella visiitillä. Riitaisat vallat ajavat ulos vieraan vallan dipl omaatit aina kun ne joutuvat hakauxiin. Vähin äänin ne sitten palaavat asemapaikoilleen kun suutahdus on ohize.
ellauri018.html on line 20: Varokaa heikkoja päitä play:none">Semantiikkaa
ellauri018.html on line 39: Seuraavassa sanoituksessa räppitaiteilija "Avain" lataa nuoruuden vimmalla rankkaa poliittista kritiikkiä ja kohdistaa syytteensä erityisesti hyväosaisiin. Outoa, mut kai se oppii iän mukana, et nuoret köyhät laiskimuxethan ne on kaikkeen syyllisiä. No, näitä diggas v 2000 nuoret, eiköhän nekin pian ala viisastua. Kuha saatas vaan tää punamulta kumoon. Luota keskustaan. Siitä rikolliskopl asta löytyy roisto joka lähtöön. Keskustapoliitikot täyttää sellit, tungeksii vankilan ovissa.
ellauri018.html on line 146: pääse ajoissa pl ödälle, on odotettava
ellauri018.html on line 248: Suomen yhtenäinen kulttuuri on kiehahtanut, syntyy kupl ia.
ellauri018.html on line 285: Kun meret lämpenee, merivirrat pysähtyy ja meristä loppuu happi. Pulsaattorikone lakkaa pyörimästä. Kuollut meri ympäröi sitten koko pl aneetan. Siinä sopii useankin jeesuksen yhtä aikaa kävellä ja tehdä ihmeitä. Ajaa mereen sikalaumoja ja herätellä kuolleita. Niinkuin eläviä ei olisi jo tarpeeksi.
ellauri018.html on line 521: VIDEO
ellauri018.html on line 725: 680: Hussein, son of Ali, marches against the superior army of the caliph at Karbala in Iraq. He is defeated, his army massacred, and he is beheaded. The spl it between Shiites and Sunnis deepens. Shiites consider Ali their first imam, Hussein the third.
ellauri018.html on line 748: play:flex;flex-direction:row;">
ellauri018.html on line 1151: Asha haluisi jatkaa Somaleissa alkanutta opiskelua eläinlääkärixi Suomessa, muttei osaa kemiaa. Jättää pyrkyrit jo kesken. Ihonväri viittaa hoitoalalle. Ashan poika kipuilee ja on joutumassa jengeihin. Se lähetetään muiden lasten perään mummun luokse Liverpooliin. Asha jää Suomeen omin nokkineen. Tekee keikkalaisen hommia. Lähtee vähän ajan päästä perässä. Asuu siellä ahtaasti lähiössä miljoonan muun sukulaisen kanssa. Not the
pl an.
ellauri019.html on line 20:
HITON HIENO SAVOTTA play:none">Sanasotaa
ellauri019.html on line 38: "I'd like to discuss slavery with you," says a cowboy, holding a gun to the head of a black man who's carrying him piggyback, "but it's a com
pl ex issue."
ellauri019.html on line 209: Riku Rinkula on tunnettu jeremiadeistaan. Tää paasaus repostelee ensimmäistä ja oikeaa ur-jeremiaadia. Perinteisesti jeremiadit on laitettu profeetta Jeremian nimiin. Hän oli Roopen hovimestari karhuko
pl an Kivisyömmi II:n suorittaman Ankkalinnan valtauksen aikana, kun Ankkalinnan rahasäiliö tuhottiin ja kuningas Joakim von Anka otettiin vangiksi.
ellauri019.html on line 251: Roope Ankka itkee kuin wesiputous. Anna päiwällä ja yöllä kyynelet wuota nijncuin ojan äläkä lacka. Älkön myös sinun silmäis munat. Nouse yöllä ja huuda. Hän on wäijynyt minua nijncuin carhuco
pl a. Hän ambuis minun munascuihini hänen wijnistäns.
ellauri019.html on line 278: Mikäs se olikaan tää Edom? Ahaa, Jehovan todistajlla on siitä pitkät turinat. (Tääkin on lyhennelmä...) Ei ihme, että Jeremiaalla oli jotain niitä vastaan hampaankolossa. Vaik ei kai se niiden vika ollu et Karhuvaari valtas Ankkalinnan. Mut varmaan ne vihelteli vahingoniloisina raunioissa ja keräs talteen Roopen säiliöstä karanneita mustuneita kultarahoja. Pahanilkisiä vanhempia veljiä, Esukan karvakätisiä poikia. Karhuko
pl an kumppaneita, Kroisos Pennosia. No saivat lopulta ansionsa mukaan. Jeremias veikkasi oikeata hevosta, kun kannusti kotijoukkuetta. Jos toisin oisi käynyt, nyt sit kai luettaisiin jotain kadonneita edomilaisia suosivia ennusteita.
ellauri019.html on line 332: Myöhempi historia ja katoaminen. Jehovan profeetan Jeremian välityksellä Edomin kuningasta varoitettiin siitä, että Babylonin kuningas
Nebukadnessar panisi ikeen hänen niskaansa (Jer 27:1–7). Sitä, mitä edomilaiset todellisuudessa tekivät tässä tilanteessa, ei kerrota. Jerusalemin tuhouduttua 607 eaa. jotkut maanpakoon joutuneet juutalaiset saivat kuitenkin tilapäisen turvapaikan Edomista. Kun babylonialaisarmeijat sitten olivat lähteneet, nämä pakolaiset palasivat omaan maahansa ja pakenivat lopulta Egyptiin. (Jer 40:11, 12; 43:5–7.) Pian koitti aika, jolloin Edomin oli siemaistava syvään Jehovan vihastuksen maljasta (Jer 25:15–17, 21). Tämä tapahtui suunnilleen 500-luvun eaa. puolivälissä Babylonian kuninkaan Nabunaidin hallitessa. Babylonian historian ja kirjallisuuden tutkijan C. J. Gaddin mukaan Nabunaidin joukoissa, jotka voittivat Edomin ja Teman, oli mukana juutalaissotilaita. Kommentoidessaan tätä John Lindsay kirjoitti: ”Täten profeetan sanat täyttyivät ainakin osittain, kun hän kirjoitti Jahvesta sanoen: ’Minä langetan kostoni Edomille kansani Israelin kädellä.’ (Hes. 25:14.) Osittain ovat täyttyneet myös Obadjan sanat, joiden mukaan Edomin ’liittolaiset’, ’luotetut ystävät’ ’pettäisivät’ sen, ’veisivät siitä voiton’ ja ’panisivat paulan sen eteen’. Tässä saatamme nähdä viittauksen babylonialaisiin, jotka Nebukadressarin päivinä olivat halukkaita antamaan sen saada osansa Juudan tappiosta, mutta Nabunaidin alaisuudessa tukahduttivat kaikiksi ajoiksi Edomin kaupalliset pyrkimykset. (Vrt. Ob. 1 ja 7.)” (Palestine Ex
pl oration Quarterly, Lontoo 1976, s. 39.)
ellauri019.html on line 350: Äiti ei hae lasta tarhasta, isä ei sano "vaimokulta", ei halaa kakkosvaimoa. Kuopus ei kasva polvella, tarhatäti ei laula tuutulauluja. Valtion rajoja muutetaan, ylen uutisia ei kuunnella. Maan hallitus kaatuu, myrsky nousee koko maassa, herrojen
pl äänit kusee Anin ja Enlilin käskystä.
ellauri019.html on line 419: No need to be com
pl ainin', my objections overruled
ellauri019.html on line 766: Gilgal, kilkattaa Pekan raitsikka entisillä raiteilla. Sillä on jo uusi suunnitelma lasten ryöstämiseksi äideiltä. Joulutoivomus: hakatkoon Samu sen kappaleiksi miekalla ja lähettäköön hyvät palat di
pl omaattipostissa jouluterveisin kurdileirille. Kinkkua ei kande lähettää, se on käytetty.
ellauri019.html on line 991: jossa koti
pl aneettaa puolustavat viherpiipertäjät
ellauri019.html on line 1028: The triptych by the Italian artist was presented on Monday at the league's Milan headquarters, along with an anti-racism
pl an which included the signing of a charter by a
pl ayer representing each of the 20 Serie A clubs. Italian stadiums are the scene of recurrent racist incidents, including monkey chants aimed at black
pl ayers.
ellauri019.html on line 1037: The anti-racism organization, Fare, argues that the paintings are a dehumanization of peo
pl e of African descent. So it seems to them that the anti-racist campaign is essentially racist. In an email to CNN, artist Simone Fugazzotto said she was "com
pl etely shocked" by the reaction.
ellauri020.html on line 19:
Min favoritdag play:none">{span style="color:white;background-color:blue"}2020{/span} Saippuaa
ellauri020.html on line 190: An only child, used to constant attention, Katrinka did not crave the spotlight so much as assume that it was naturally hers, and when she found herself in it, she accepted the position with a naturalness that was disarming. Outgoing and warm, she liked peo
pl e and, in return, most peo
pl e instinctively liked her.
ellauri020.html on line 243: Sanokaa mitä sanotte näistä elämän trumppikorttien pitelijöistä, ne osaa laskea. Vaikka vaan neljää laskutapaa ja koron korkoa, niiltä ei jää sormi suuhun siitä mikä kannattaa. Kaikella on hintansa. Ne ei ehkä lue romaaneja, mutta lukee kyllä pörssikursseja. Ja ännän ilmaisen panon
pl us yhden paxuxi paukautuxen jälkeen Katrinkan osakkeet on pohjassa. Tuli pörssiromahdus. Ois kannattanut Katrinkan lukee Pamelaa. Sillä oli kysynnän ja tarjonnan laki hanskassa.
ellauri020.html on line 247: Katrinka laughed, and like every other man, Franta [yx sybikaalisesti urhea rallikuski, Kimi Räikkösen näköinen pikkumies lippis väärinpäin] found the sound of it com
pl etely captivating. The looks of her big boobs perfectly erectile too, most likely. Didnt even register that she was 8 months pregnant. What a fairy tale.
ellauri020.html on line 253: Liikuttavat jäähyväiset Ewa Braunille traagisten hautajaisten jälkeen ruminta neuvostoarkkitehtuuria edustavalla asemalla: tall slender girl in flowered skirt and white blouse, and statuesque woman in smart navy traveling suit. Himputti näitä Iivanan rakennus- ja sisustustyyli
pl äjäyxiä ja catwalkkeja. Asujen suunnittelijaa ei sentään mainita, kun ei olla vielä rikkaita. Kun Kengu heitti vauvanvaatteet Ruun perästä roskakuiluun, osassa oli vielä hintalaput kiinni. Vuonna 1968? Varmaan ostettu Kaufhofista. Niinkuin Liisa-täti.
ellauri020.html on line 258: - You are a com
pl ete capitalist. - I believe in hard work. Is that being a capitalist? - You want to make money. That is. - Everyone wants to make money. Even you.
ellauri020.html on line 262: Iivanan mielestä sosialismin vika on, ettei olla vapaita, tai ei oikein sekään, se ettei voi odottaa lottovoittoa, jotain ihan ihmeellistä pullaa, tulla ökyrikkaaxi, tai siis, ahkerat oman elämänsä sepot ei ökyrikastu, tai siis, kaikilla sepoilla ei ole sitä mahdollisuutta edes, siis siitä toivoa, ei voi ottaa riskejä ja hit it big, laahus vaan laahustaa,
pl odding thru life hardly noticing they´re alive. The American dream you know. äh, miten sen nyt sanoisi. Iivana,
pl iis älä jauha, älä edes yritä. Koitat vaan sanoa, et tasa-arvo ei ole vapautta, vapautta on valta, ja mielivalta varsinkin, ja siihen pitää olla paljon paljon pätäkkää, ennen kaikkea paljon enemmän kuin muulla laahuxella. Kuten Darwin sanoo, ei voita ellei voita muita. Kyynärpäille pitää olla liikkumavapautta.
ellauri020.html on line 284: Katrinka ja Natalie on samixet, ihailevat toistensa kauneutta, aivoja, bisnesvainua ja miesmenestystä. Katrinka tietty vetää lopulta pitemmän korren,
pl okkaa arvokkan partakoneen Nasulta. Mutta on yx mutta, vakava aber: Jean-Clauden mielestä periodin aikana ei voi bylsiä. Katrinan ja Mirekin mielestä se oli mukavaa, kuin ois lämpimässä kylvyssä. Onx partaveizi joku muslimi? No pitäähän nekin wiixikarvat timmissä. Gilletten terällä.
ellauri020.html on line 301: Ivana, a Czeck immigrant, met Donald Trump in 1976 while attending a fashion show in New York, according to the New York Post. By the next year, the cou
pl e had married, and in short order had had three kids and became steady figures in the New York socialite scene. Trump had been at the bar in Maxwell’s Plum. Maxwell’s Plum is gone now, but the very name evokes the era of frantic singles underneath the Art Nouveau ceiling. It was the
pl ace where flight attendants hoped to find bankers, and models looked for dates. Donald met his model, Ivana Zelnickova, visiting from Montreal. She liked to tell the story of how she had gone skiing with Donald, pretending to be a learner like him, and then humiliated him by whizzing past him down the slopes.
ellauri020.html on line 319: Iskure
pl iikissä epäonnistuttuaan Aku kättelee Iinestä kovaa kuin pientä presidenttiä. Iines puristaa epänaisellisen kovaa takaisin. Aku pahastuu taas miehekästä käytöstä, mutta kuvittelee sitten miten Iinexen vahvat reidet puristais sen kylkiä. Ei niin pahaa ettei jotain hyvääkin.
ellauri020.html on line 325: Kirjan Aku on ikivanhaa (?) amerikkalaista hienostoa Newportista, 22 huonetta ja keittiö
pl us autotalli. Oikea Aku on mamu 2. ja 3. polvessa. Six kai se niin vainoaa uudempia matuja. Isoisä Friedrich piti bordellia kultakentillä, äiti oli skottilainen sisäkkö. Valehtelivat aluxi olevansa ruozalaisia, kun saxa ei ollut oikeen muotia. Nyttemmin ei ruozi taida trendata. Jenkit suhtautuu julkkisten valehteluun ymmärtävästi. Se on ok, jos niillä oli siihen joku hyvä syy. Kuten oma etu ajettavana.
ellauri020.html on line 364: Palm Beach had been Ivana Trump’s idea. Long ago, Donald had screamed at her, “I want nothing social that you aspire to. If that is what makes you happy, get another husband!” But she had no intention of doing that, for Ivana, like Donald, was living out a fantasy. She had seen that in the Trump life everything and everybody appeared to come with a price, or a marker for future use. Ivana had learned to look through Donald with glazed eyes when he said to close friends, as he had in the early years of their marriage, “I would never buy Ivana any decent jewels or pictures. Why give her negotiable assets?” She had gotten out of Eastern Europe by being tough and highly disci
pl ined, and she had compounded her skills through her husband, the master manipulator. She had learned the lingua franca in a world where everyone seemed to be using everyone else in a relentless drive for power. How was she to know that there was another way to live? Besides, she often told her friends, however cruel Donald could be, she was very much in love with him.
ellauri020.html on line 374: Unlike his last two weddings, Donald Trump´s first marriage to Ivana in 1977 was strangely private; it´s almost impossible to find any photographic evidence of their big day on the internet. But we do know that it took
pl ace in the Marble Collegiate Church and that the New York mayor was present, per Vanity Fair.
ellauri020.html on line 391: Trump spoke in a hypnotic, unending torrent of words. Often he appeared to free-associate. He referred to himself in the third person: “Trump says. . . Trump believes.” His phrases skibbled around and doubled back on themselves like fireworks in a summer sky. He reminded me of a carnival barker trying to fill his tent. “I’m more popular now than I was two months ago. There are two publics as far as I’m concerned. The real public and then there’s the New York society horseshit. The real public has always liked Donald Trump. The real public feels that Donald Trump is going through Trump-bashing. When I go out now, forget about it. I’m mobbed. It’s bedlam,” Trump told me. Donald is a believer in the big-lie theory,” his lawyer had told me. “If you say something again and again, peo
pl e will believe you.” “One of my lawyers said that?” Trump said when I asked him about it. “I think if one of my lawyers said that, I’d like to know who it is, because I’d fire his ass. I’d like to find out who the scumbag is!”
ellauri020.html on line 399: For years, Ivana appeared to have studied the public behavior of the royals. Her friends now called this “Ivana’s imperial-cou
pl e syndrome,” and they teased her about it, for they knew that Ivana, like Donald, was inventing and reinventing herself all the time. When she had first come to New York, she wore elaborate helmet hairdos and bouffant satin dresses, very Hollywood; her image of rich American women probably came from the movies she had seen as a child. Ivana had now spent years passing through the fine rooms of New York, but she had never seemed to learn the real way of the truly rich, the art of understatement. Instead, she had become regal, filling her houses with the kind of ormolu found in palaces in Eastern Europe. She had taken to waving to friends with tiny hand motions, as if to conserve her energy. At her own charity receptions, she insisted that she and Donald form a receiving line, and she would stand in pinpoint heels, never sinking into the deep grass—such was her control.
ellauri020.html on line 414: "Nice
pl ace", sanoo Ted Turner tupareissa leveellä etelämurteella. Tuskinpa on enää tervetullut Aku Ankan bileisiin, se on CNN:n perustaja, fake newsien Pelle Peloton. Mut Akukin oli demokraatti ennenkuin se sai kokoon kolmannen biljardinsa. Tedillä on vaan kax, eihän se ole vakavasti otettava rahaläjä vielä. Naurettavan demokraattinen. "Indeed", vastaa Sanelma kaximielisesti. (Huumoria! Bravo Iivana!) Toinen kaamee vieras on Ron Perelman, 49. rikkain jenkki, viekas jutkuketku, jolla on paalua ostaa Aku ja rahaa jää vielä kolmeen veljenpoikaankin. Se viherkiristi izelleen Gilletten partaveizifirman. (Kai sentään eri Gillette kuin Katrinkan uusin heila Jean-Jacques, vai mikä janne se nyt oli. Joku viftailija kumminkin.)
ellauri020.html on line 468: We were walking through the rubble of the Commodore Hotel, which would soon reopen as the Grand Hyatt. Ivana had been given the responsibility of supervising all the decoration; she was hard at it, despite the fact that she was wearing a white wool Thierry Mugler jumpsuit and pale Dior shoes as she picked her way through the sawdust. “I told you never to leave a broom like this in a room!” she screamed at one worker. Screaming at her em
pl oyees had become part of her hallmark, perhaps her way of feeling power. Later, in Atlantic City, she would become known for her obsession with cleanliness. Determined to bring glamour to Trump Castle, she became famous for her attention to appearances, once moving a pregnant waitress, desperate for big tips, off the casino floor. The woman was
pl aced in a distant lounge and given a clown’s suit to disguise her condition.
ellauri020.html on line 569: Roska
pl ärän omistaja Mark Hollen, joka epähuomiossa poltti perheensä, on nyt siitä toipunut. Bisnekset menee hyvin ja uusi presentaabelimpi hani alla. Luonnollinen kiinnostus naisiin on palannut. Tää on Iivanasta hienoa. Sellasta markkinoiden resilienssiä. Luovaa tuhoa. Eikun lisääntymään taas, pannaan pystyyn uusi yritys.
ellauri020.html on line 615: The Dictionary of 1001 Famous Peopl e.
ellauri020.html on line 621: The Compl ete Encyclopedia of Homemaking Ideas.
ellauri020.html on line 641: He began belittling her: “That dress is terrible.” “You’re showing too much cleavage.” “You never spend enough time with the children.” “Who would touch those pl astic breasts?” Ivana told her friends that Donald had stopped sleeping with her. She blamed herself. “I think it was Donald’s master pl an to get rid of Ivana in Atlantic City,” one of her assistants told me. “By then, Marla Mapl es was in a suite at the Trump Regency. Atlantic City was to be their pl ayground.”
ellauri020.html on line 645: The power coupl e´s tabloid-worthy marriage came to a screeching halt with a bitter divorce in 1990. The reason is not exactly a shocker: Trump was having an affair.
ellauri020.html on line 646: Beginning in 1987, Trump had a widely-publicized relationship with Marla Mapl es, a blond model-actress from Georgia who was then 26. The two met in New York City, Newsweek reports, when Trump was throwing a party to celebration the publication of his book, The Art of the Deal. Mapl es began to frequent Atlantic City, and the affair dominated headlines during the late eighties.
ellauri020.html on line 648: In her new book, Raising Trump, Ivana writes about the time in December 1989 when she was confronted by Mapl es at a ski resort in Aspen, per AP. "This young blonde woman approached me out of the blue and said ´I´m Marla and I love your husband. Do you?´ I said ´Get lost. I love my husband.´ It was unladylike but I was in shock." Apparently it was in this moment she realized her marriage with Donald was over.
ellauri020.html on line 661: Liz Smith had broken the story of the Trumps’ separation. The entire sordid history of Marla Mapl es and Ivana fighting on the Aspen ski slopes was all over the papers.
ellauri020.html on line 673: In fact, Trump blamed the divorce in part on the entanglement between Ivana and his business. Trump, early on, brought her in on his real estate empire. She worked at the Trump Organization as a president for his Atlantic City casino, Cosmopolitan reports, and later a manager for the Plaza Hotel, which he bought in 1988, per Peopl e.
ellauri020.html on line 687: Katrinkaa ei kaduta, kun se hypistelee ja hinnoittelee Markun antamia lahjoja. Niitä on piisannut, pl us a whole lotta love. Just sellasta kodikasta kuin isällä ja äidillä, jossa saa riidellä, ilman että suututaan. Sillä Katrinka tahtoo riidellä, on se vähintään yhtä kova luupää kuin Markkukin.
ellauri020.html on line 689: Mut nyt on Katrinkan poika löytynyt. Lyön vetoa etse on se sakemannidipl omaatin korot yhteeen kalauttava nätimpi poika. Joo just se, ja se kalauttaa korot yhteen samalla lailla nazimaisesti joka kerta. Ei sentään vedä kättä levynä etunojaan ja huuda Viva Espanja, kuin se peltijalka falangisti de Viana. Hugon peltijalka joutui tunkiolle sisällissodan melskeissä. Sinne joutikin, Hugo peltijalkoineen.
ellauri020.html on line 706:
Ivana Trump is a former model and ex-wife of Donald Trump. She and Trump were part of New York City´s social elite during the 1980s. The two spl it in 1990 and Ivana won a $20 million divorce settlement. She later published The Best Is Yet to Come: Coping With Divorce and Enjoying Life Again. In it, she advised divorcees to "take his wallet to the cleaners."
ellauri020.html on line 712: Enough peopl e went looking for similarities between the real Trump marriage and the fictional Graham marriage that it became a legal scuffle within the larger war that was the ugly Trump divorce, with Donald’s lawyers fighting to preserve a gag order keeping Ivana from talking about their marriage. For her part, Ivana insisted she wasn’t writing about her ex. She told the Los Angeles Times: “There is no way he can prove that he’s Adam because he’s not Adam and I make sure that he’s not Adam,” adding that, “And even I think I have constitutional rights of speech in America. I did not abuse them.”
ellauri020.html on line 880: tuhotaan joukolla koko biosfääri, kotipl aneetta, syödään izemme kuin kezut.
ellauri021.html on line 18: CARLSON PUUTTUU PELIIN play:none">Epigrammeja
ellauri021.html on line 267: Leave me alone, damned! Let me do as I pl ease
ellauri021.html on line 525: VIDEO
ellauri021.html on line 572: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri021.html on line 605: VIDEO
ellauri021.html on line 612: omnibus pl acebam.
ellauri021.html on line 636: pl anxi et hoc totum.
ellauri021.html on line 661: «ludus compl eatur!»
ellauri021.html on line 689: Amabat pl us to chase a rattus,
ellauri021.html on line 720: Plenus blood et pl enior glory.
ellauri021.html on line 743: Pueri think non pl us of Caesar,
ellauri021.html on line 786: Niistähän mä, pl us vähän isästä ja äidistä.
ellauri021.html on line 821: just bacon pl ease, hold the lettuce and tomato.
ellauri021.html on line 834: Highlight lyrics and request an expl anation.
ellauri021.html on line 835: Click on highlighted lyrics to expl ain.
ellauri021.html on line 840: You're in for a pl easant surprise
ellauri021.html on line 950: Wikipedia still fails to live up to its liberal values. In 2018, Wikimedia disclosed that only 17.67% of over 1.5 million biographies on the site are about women. Of the over 135,000 active editors on Wikipedia, surveys indicate that only 8.5% to 16% are female. See: Exampl es of Bias in Wikipedia.
(Lue: Naisetkin äänestävät jaloillaan. Turhaan herra puuhaa sekä hääräilee, täällä tehdään niinkuin miehet määräilee.)
ellauri021.html on line 954: Setback to pro-aborts: "Supreme Court leaves in pl ace Kentucky abortion restriction." (Lue: Trumpin valizemat tuomarit tekee työtä käskettyä. Onnexi se vitun Montesquieu ei sählää täällä jenkeissä.)
ellauri021.html on line 958: The global warming alarmists now have a new category of peopl e they are targeting - pet owners! 67 percent of U.S. households, or about 85 million families, own a pet. Are the global warming alarmists committing political suicide?
ellauri021.html on line 966: Thank the Second Amendment: Texas church shooting stopped in its tracks by armed" worshiper. Thank God too, and a prayer for those killed before the compl ete massacre was averted." (Lue: Jos pahat miehet tulis Matin lasten tarhaan ammuskelemaan, aseistetut isäpapat pystyis ne kyllä nitistämään, eli take them down. Vois siinä tulla alas jokunen tenavistakin, mutta siitä selvitään sitten rukouksen voimalla.)
ellauri021.html on line 975: Setback for climate change alarmists: The Australian government arrested nearly 200 peopl e for setting fires in five states. So much for the notions that climate change is responsible and that socialism is the answer. (Lue: Dodi! eihän ne kenkurat ois voinu sentään izestänsä syttyä. Siellähän oli vaan 45 astetta varjossa.)
ellauri021.html on line 977: Atheists are experiencing a web marketing BEAT DOWN! The Christian internet evangelism organization Global Media Outreach indicates that as of September 2019 over 1,900,000,000 gospel visits have occurred via their websites. On the other hand, no atheist organization has ever accompl ished such a web marketing feat. Is atheism boring or are atheists bad digital marketers who have difficulty understanding search engine algorithms? Or is it both? Oh atheists, feel the sting! (Lue: Jumalakin laskee lampaansa googlen avulla. Ateistit ei osaa ketkuilla kuolleilla sieluilla. Tai sit niitä ei vaan hirveesti kiinnosta. Mitäs ruoskia kuollutta hevosta. Evankelistat on siinä ihan proo.)
ellauri021.html on line 1001: Joku heebo kumartaa islamistin näköisenä kukkakasan edessä jossa on lappu We remember Heather? Kukahan tuhansista jenkki maantieraadoista on kyseessä? Oisko se jonka asenazit tappo autolla päälle ajamalla Virginian v 2017 asemielenosotuxissa? Very fine peopl e on both sides, korjas Trump lausuntoa sillon. Asehemmot ja bigotit on molemmat sen persukannattajia. Tekijä sai 419 v tuomion. Olis paha paikka Metusalemillekin. Päässee vapaaxi hyvän käytöxen johdosta. Varomattomuutta liikenteessä. Heather oisit varonut.
ellauri022.html on line 18:
Pikku naisia play:none">Naisasiaa
ellauri022.html on line 24: Tää tuotantokausi on naisasiaa enintään kieli poskessa. Kyllä tää on ihan ehtaa ja tuttua #metoo tavaraa, setämiehen mietettä. Mihkäs leobardi tä
pl istään pääsisi.
ellauri022.html on line 80: Se ja Tom,
pl us Polly on huushollin paarioita.
ellauri022.html on line 279: Vanhemmat tekee laskutoimituxia kuin herra Shaw, summaa
pl usit ja miinustaa miinusit, kattoo mitä viivan alle jää, päättää siitä kenen sopii naida kenetkin. Nuoret luotaa höpsismiin, liskoaivoihin, ja siitä alkaa ne riidat joita niin monet kirjat märehtii. Wilho ja Hilja mokas siinä, ditto Riku ja Heluna. Iso Pauli sanoi, ettei pidä puuttua. Siitä ei tuu lasta eikä paskaakaan, pelkkää porua. Pirkko ja Calle ei paljon puuttuneet, ehkä koska ne oli ite olleet vähän kuin Roomeo ja Juulia. Köyhä laiha mamu ja fennomaani bashkiiri.
ellauri022.html on line 295: She ex
pl ained her "spinsterhood" in an interview with Louise Chandler Moulton, "I am more than half-persuaded that I am a man's soul put by some freak of nature into a woman's body. … because I have fallen in love with so many pretty girls and never once the least bit with any man."
ellauri022.html on line 362: The ha
pl ess mansion throng,
ellauri022.html on line 425:
The fable was well known in Ancient Greece; Athenaeus records that Hieronymus of Rhodes, in his Historical Notes, quoted an epigram of Sophocles against Euripides that parodied the story of Helios and Boreas.[2] It related how Sophocles had his cloak stolen by a boy to whom he had made love. Euripides joked that he had had that boy too, and it did not cost him anything. Sophocles´ repl y satirises the adulteries of Euripides: "It was the Sun, and not a boy, whose heat stripped me naked; as for you, Euripides, when you were kissing someone else´s wife the North Wind screwed you. You are unwise, you who sow in another´s field, to accuse Eros of being a snatch-thief."
ellauri022.html on line 435: Heidi kyllä oli pl agioitu jonkun sakemanni äijän aiemmasta kirjasta.
ellauri022.html on line 456: It is sometimes used pejoratively, referring to someone whose optimism is excessive to the point of naïveté or refusing to accept the facts of an unfortunate situation. This pejorative use can be heard in the introduction of the 1930 George and Ira Gershwin song "But Not For Me": "I never want to hear from any cheerful pollyannas/who tell me fate suppl ies a mate/that´s all bananas." (performed by Judy Garland in the 1943 movie Girl Crazy).
ellauri022.html on line 504: ➢ What pl an did_________come up with?
ellauri022.html on line 600: Samat eat!fuck!kill! tyypin kropl eemit toistuu kun tyypit sekoaa, ja niiden reaktiot siihen on aina samat. Apinat on suht yxinkertasia koneita, ja ne menee aina samoista kohtaa rikki. Ne on tyyppivikoja.
ellauri022.html on line 628: Joo, kiitoxista selviää, et Lloyd Hustvedt, toi Minnesotan hongankolistaja, se sieltä tosiaankin vinkkaa haudan takaa. Sirin haamukirjoittaja, kirjaimellisesti. Lloyd llook out, it´s the llandllord. Siiri onkin llaaman näköinen. Tai alpakan. Siinä on jotain samaa kuin Auli Hakulisessa. Samanlainen hujoppi, samanlainen isä, ja isäsuhdekin. Auli Hakulisen isä Lauri Hakulinen kexi sanan "muovi". Seisoi Kuusitiellä parvekkeella ja huusi pihan asukkaille "MUOVI! MUOVI!", saadaxeen ne luopumaan sanasta pl asu. Ja niinhän ne tekikin, vaan eivät silti sunkaan luopuneet pl astiikista. Sana muovi kuluu kansan suussa, aine kierrättyy sen käsissä, kunnes päätyy pikku hiukkasina luontoon eläinten surmaxi. Maasta olet sinä tullut, sinne päädytkin ja meriin, säilyt siellä iankaikkisesti iankaikkiseen.
ellauri022.html on line 825: Niitä oli kyllä silminnähden vähemmän kuin Tripl assa.
ellauri022.html on line 869: Saul Bellow siteeraa tätä John Claren pl äjäystä:
ellauri022.html on line 881: Sigh´d o´er bird
pl easures but no nest destroyed Huokailin linnunonnea särkemättä pesää
ellauri022.html on line 882: With
pl easure felt the singing they enjoyed Mieluummin kuulin laulua pitkin kesää
ellauri022.html on line 919: Kirjoitti Todesfugen heti Seijan synnyttyä 1952 mut hävis runokilpailun tyttöystävälle. Suuttui sille siitä kuten mä, kun hävisin tikanheiton Seijalle. Paulkin vähän
pl agioi muilta runoja, Todesfugekaan ei ois mennyt läpi Urkundista. Sääti ranskalaisen aatelisen tytön kaa, jonka sukulaiset eivät tykänneet. Vähän kuin Julie ja Pröö. Kirjoittivat melkein yhtä monta kirjettä kuin ne, tai Seija ja mä pienenä. Hukuttautui Seineen sinä vuonna kun Petsku oli Lapissa. Ja mä Konstanzissa. Ois täyttänyt sinä vuonna 50, se on vaikea paikka monille. Mä kävin yxin Australiassa 50-vuotiskesänä, ja syxyllä tarjosin vanhemmille kiinalaista sapuskaa. Ne söivät epähuomiossa chilikastiketta raakana ja kävivät kuumana. Seijalla ja Helmillä oli söpöt kiinalaiset putkimekot.
ellauri022.html on line 934:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ab/Nizami_Rug_Crop.jpg/440px-Nizami_Rug_Crop.jpg" />
ellauri022.html on line 979: as the golden stream did spray s
pl atter and spatter like a shower of shimmering light
ellauri023.html on line 19:
OLLIN kurjuusplay:none">Kertomuxia
ellauri023.html on line 27: Ruozinnoxesta
Den moderlöse Olavi on painos loppu. Se kuitenkin muistuttaa, että Olavi oli vaan puolixi orpo, olihan sillä isä elossa. Ja paha äitipuoli. Wilho Pylkkäsen tarina sukupuolenvaihdoxella. Alkuperäisteosta on 1 k
pl SKS:n kirjaston varastossa. Ei ihan Ivana Trump-luokan bestselleri, tai Raamatun. Niiden sankarien koettelemuxet kiinnostaa laajempaa yleisöä. Orpo Olavi on huutavan ääni korvessa. Korvessa harva kuuntelee huutoa. Jos puu kaatuu korvessa ja korppikaan ei kuule, tuleeko siitä ääntä ollenkaan? Ehkä jumala kuulee julkkista jota kukaan muu ei nää.
ellauri023.html on line 198: Se möi huutokaupalla pyssyn, korttipakan ja gramofoonin,
pl us 20 levyä, ja sikaarit.
ellauri023.html on line 582: Tässä pitää olla tarkkana. Sekä etiikka että estetiikka tieteinä koskee sitä mix jengi
luulee et joku on hyvää tai kaunista. Sillä nehän on vaan tän elukan, tai joidenkin niistä, näkemyxiä. Ei sen kummempaa. "Oikeesti" ei ole sen enempi hyvää kuin kaunista, on vaan eri elukoiden etuja,
pl aneettoja ja tähtiä, kauniita pilviä, ja Darwin pilven reunalla.
ellauri023.html on line 619: Tuhlailevalle öykkäröinnille ja barokille vastakkainen kiintopiste estetiikan pelissä on funktionalismi, yxinkertainen on kaunista. Rönsyt poistamalla saadaan parannetux tuottavuutta. Kaunis hävittäjä, kaunis peto. Tää on köyhän miehen estetiikkaa. Kaiken maailman harmoniat ja symmetriat kuuluu tähän. Kolmogorovin kom
pl eksiteetin minimointia. Ekonomiaa. Vähän sellasta anaalista, protestanttista, talonpoikaista.
ellauri023.html on line 656: Aarne Kinnunen alaviittaa Kari Enqvistiin. Kari Enqvist on se eno Punaiselta
pl aneetalta, jolta Dumari pyysi anteexi kun katosi.
ellauri023.html on line 675: Kai me ton kuna, pitää sanoa kuin Sokrates. (Nykerönenä ei kiroillut rumasti kuin Salama, vaan sievästi Helvi Hämäläisen tyylillä.) Koira vieköön näitä julkimoiden "mietiskelin tässä niitä näitä" -
pl okeja. Täntasoiset ajattelun pikku jättiläiset on olleet päättämässä valtakunnan asioista. Sitä saa mitä tilaa.
ellauri023.html on line 689: I sim
pl y ache from smiling. Why are women expected to beam all the time? It's unfair. If a man looks solemn, it's automatically assumed he's a serious person, not a miserable one.
ellauri023.html on line 717: Epicurean - Be happy by
pl easure
ellauri023.html on line 728: In 508 BC, during the war between Rome and Clusium, the Clusian king Lars Porsena laid siege to Rome. Gaius Mucius Cordus, with the approval of the Roman Senate, sneaked into the Etruscan camp with the intent of murdering Porsena. Since it was the soldiers' pay day, there were two similarly dressed peo
pl e, one of whom was the king, on a raised
pl atform speaking to the troops. This caused Mucius to misidentify his target, and he killed Porsena's scribe by mistake. After being captured, he famously declared to Porsena: "I am Gaius Mucius, a citizen of Rome. I came
ellauri023.html on line 893: Entäs muiden
pl aneettojen ötökät? Mixei niitä mainita mitalien jaossa?
ellauri023.html on line 897: pienintäkään taukoa,
pl us mahdollisimman paljon tekosalamoita ja räiskettä,
ellauri023.html on line 1063: Vesku tuodaan tuoliin avustettuna kuin Harvey Weinstein. Sen vanhoista naisjutuista ei nyt kaivella skandaaleja, ihan myötäsukaan silitellään vanhaa
pl ösöä. Eski tenttaa kunnioittavasti lavaraakkia, Pervon Jarin kirja postillana. Yleisö kuuntelee. Turvallisuuden vuoxi sille ei anneta puheenvuoroa. Ettei lennä puukot ilmassa.
ellauri023.html on line 1065: Muistellaan syylänaaman ku
pl akurkun debyyttiä Pojat leffassa. Voi että siitäkin on kauan. Ploirikin on
pl aihtunut sikapylleröstä lähes nuoruusiän mittoihin, joskin raihnaampi. Eskikin on melkein emeritus, takatukka ohut ja harmaantunut. Ei ole leobardi päässyt tä
pl istään, mutta hiuxistaan, sillä on nyt tollainen Haju Pisilä-kampaus. Se trendaa keskustassa.
ellauri023.html on line 1091: Yhtälöistä ei ole hajua, mutta kaukaloista nousee jotakin. Eski kusee ravintola Kosmoxen vasempaan pisuaariin, Vessa-Matti kuzee oikeeseen, ja sanoo "kiitos siitä kazeesta". Mihkähän se Eski kazoi. Aika homoa! Systeemiällissä ezitään väylää yleisinhimilliseen ilmiöön, tämänhetkiseen. Täähän on kun jotain vitun
zeniä . Kiiteltyään vielä Eskiä zitä kädessä pitäen, Vesku zulloi zen takas houzuihin. Selkeesti
plaatto">pl aattolaista koulukuntaa. Tutustunut
Gurdijeffin opetuxiin. Junassa tavattu pituushyppääjäkin on fixu mies. Hieno mies. (Mä tunnen sen. Tunnen mäkin. Tunnetteko te?)
ellauri023.html on line 1203: Nyt olen päässyt pienen ohukaisen vihreen kirjan loppuun. Se oli surullinen, muttei masentava. Loppu oli aika lyyrillinen, siis epätodellisen oloinen. Ei käynyt hyvin eikä huonosti, ei oikeastaan käynyt kuinkaan. Ei sattunut. Herttaisia kesämuistoja, sellaisia just joita 60 vuotias täti voisi kertoa 30-luvulta. Kivasti kertomuxen fokus lopuxi nyrjähti, ei enää tiennyt kuka puhuu mitä kenelle. "mezä missä poimimme isäsi kanssa mustikoita kerran". Syöpäinen tyttö lähtee ku
pl assa elänyttä, jäihin ehkä pudonnutta poikaa vastaan. Kuolema on orjantappura jonka kautta päästään kiinni rubiiniin, runoili Karl Venneberg, Gunnelin ikä- ja ehkä opiskelutoveri, nelkytlukulaisia. Niinpä niin. Uskokoon ken voi.
ellauri023.html on line 1214: Energian säilymisen laki on fysiikassa tärkeä (vaikka ei mitenkään pyhä), mutta ei se ole logiikkaa. Periaatteessa hetkellä t voisi olla olematta mitään, ja hetkellä t+1 jotakin. Maailmaan voisi ku
pl ia koko ajan uutta ainetta. Loogisesti konsistentti ajatus, oli se totta sitten tai tarua. Tietysti se on jotenkin randomia ellei sitä säätele. Se tekee tilaa enkeleille ynnä muille ihmeille, sen takia kai se tuntui Pertti Rovamosta pahalta. Tuliko Pertistä isona eräopas vai mikä? Meni mezään pakoon niskuroivaa maailmaa.
ellauri024.html on line 18:
MISTÄ VOI LÖYTÄÄ VASTAUXIA? play:none">Vastauxia
ellauri024.html on line 339: Arska kammoaa julkista esiintymistä, vaikka tykkääkin keekoilla kirjassa. On kuin avantoon pudonnut koira. Arska tykkäs jostain Charlie Cha
pl inin laulusta leffassa Nykyaika. Putoon kärryiltä, en tiedä mitä laulua se tarkoittaa. Oisko se, jonka sanoissa ei ole mitään järkeä. Mut en mä kyllä tykkää Cha
pl inista muutenkaan. Se oli aika huumoriton narsisti. Jaa, onkohan Arskakin narsisti? En ihmettelisi.
ellauri024.html on line 535:
Mutta myös sitten kun arvostelemme komiikkaa (puhu vaan izestäsi Kinnusen akan poika) pidämme sitä objektiivisesti hyvänä ja huonona.
Mitä vittua!? Tää on tämmönen hyvä-paha absolutisti. Niin yxiliitisellä arvomaailmalla varustettu tyyppi voi olla hyvä koomikko vaan luontojaan, oikeastaan vastoin parempaa tietoaan. Siltä ikäänkuin lipsahtelee hyviäkin vizejä. Kuten aiemminkin olen sanonut, se että tykkää Cha
pl inista voi olla oire jostain pahemmasta. Tuloxelle nauravat vain hyeenat.
ellauri024.html on line 730: Paljon samaa, jotain eroja. Naisvihainen (+), herravihainen (-), anaalinen (+), narsistinen (+), vääräleuka savölainen (+), maalaisäijä (+), vanttera (-), salatietäjä (+), pitkävihainen (+), vittuilija (+), herkkä izetunto (+), nopeasti vaihtelevat mielialat (+). Aika sama sananupotus sopii muhunkin! Herravihakoordinaatti on mun bittivektorissa
pl ussana ja maalaisuus miinuxena.
ellauri024.html on line 736: Se on monitulkintaista myös syvällisemmällä tavalla: olix joku kohtalo hyvä vi paha riippuu arvoista, ja arvoja voi aina kieltää tai muuten väännellä. Sehän se on sitä filosofiaa, joka just synnyttää komiikkaa. Paras huumori
pl äjäys on sellainen, jonka hauskuus jää just tolla lailla kahden vaiheille. Totta toinen puoli, mutta kumpi?
ellauri024.html on line 778: Aarne Kinnusen loppupäätelmä: loppujen lopuxi huumorissa rulaa hyvä maku. Cha
pl inia monet pitävät julmana. Ja Aarne Kinnusta. Se vaikuttaa joskus vähän hemmolta, jonka elämässä äkkipikaisuus ja julmuus ryöpsähtivät arvaamattomasti.
ellauri024.html on line 804: Haanpään luo tuli joku kunnan pampuista. Pentti meni heti toiseen huoneeseen, josta kuului vähän päästä kajahtava pieru. Aili meni availemaan ikkunaa. Jälkikäteen sanoi, että Pentti ei voinut sietää sitä heppua. Ihamaniemeläinen Heikki Ilvonen huusi järvellä apua. Mentiin kazomaan, istui juovuxissa veneen pohjalla. Mikä hätänä? No kun perse on märkä. Mullakin aina kastui takapuoli pienellä punaisella muovikanootilla meloessa Sommarhemin järvi
pl otussa, mistä toistuvasti valitin. Siitä tuli sanonta: Miisun pylly on märkä.
ellauri024.html on line 878: Voi helvetti tätä Herliinin
pl ärän skizofreniaa! Tuskin on
ellauri024.html on line 959: Järjestelmä-ällitieteen tarkoitus on valkopestä yritysten aikeita, tehdä omanvoitonpyynnistä salonkikelpoista. Osittain uudistetulla uljaan uuden maailman newspeakilla, mutta vanhoilla pappisvallan keinoilla. Koulitaan insinöörin
pl antut kuuliaisuuteen esivallalle, ja opetetaan niitä puolestaan opettamaan muut ulkoistetut työläiset tiimihenkisixi yhden hengen yrittäjixi, positiivisixi polkupyöräläheteixi, optimistisixi uberkuskeixi, muixi oman onnen sepoixi, hyödyllisiixi idiooteixi, hyväuskoisixi hölmöixi, hyvixi häviäjixi. Korvataan kollektiivisuus konnektiivisuudella. Samaa vedätystä se silti on kuin aina ennenkin. Vanhaa vinettoa uudemmissa leileissä. Kyllä olis Marxille ja Engelsille taas töitä.
ellauri024.html on line 999: Peo
pl e collectively needs to act more systems intelligently to best deal with the both the challenges and the opportunities these interconnections bring.
ellauri024.html on line 1455:
Jesus gör likstädning. Jesus limpia el tiempl o. Jesus is cleaning the templ e.
ellauri025.html on line 19: 16 sivua POLLEA!play:none">Novelleja
ellauri025.html on line 60: Se (Tomppa siis) kuoli epäilyttävän nuorena, 49-vuotiaana. Hyvin tavallinen ikä suikille. Se on wannabe pyhimyxelle toisaalta hyvä juttu; jos elät kauhu vanhaxi, jengi ehtii unohtaa sut ja sun ihmetekosi. Tomppa sai sädekehän jo 5v päästä kuoltuaan. Dante (1265-1321) oli silloin 14-vuotias. Dante epäili komediassaan Tompan tulleen myrkytetyxi, mutta myöhemmät kuolemansyyntutkijat eivät ole löytäneet indikaatioita foul pl aystä. Kuinkahan ois käynyt jos Murhia ja kantrimusiikkia sarjan utelias täti oisi ollut paikalla? Se haistaa foul pl ayn jo pitkän matkan päästä. Olikohan knaapin hepallakin joku myrkytys? Oliko se ähky? Ehkä jotain foul pl ay enkeleiden toimesta? Enkeli- ja konitohtorille tehtiin mainosta. Crooked Housessakin epäiltiin foul pl ayta, ja syystäkin.
ellauri025.html on line 89: Tomismi tiivisti ennen kaikkea keskiaikaisen filosofian skolastisen perinteen 1200-luvun lopun siirtymisen Augustinuksen pl atonistisista tulkinnoista Aristoteleen suuntaan. Siirtymään vaikutti suuresti silloinen arabialainen filosofia, sen edustajista erityisesti Averroës eli Ibn Rušd. Tomisteille oli tärkeää tehdä tiukka ero luonnollisen ja yliluonnollisen todellisuuden välillä, koska pl atoninen ideaoppi johti heidän mielestään panteismiin tehden arkitodellisuudestakin jumalaisen, tai jumalaisuudesta arkisen. Eläköön se pieni ero!
ellauri025.html on line 110: Toward the end of his life, he had a vision that forced him to drop his pen. Though he had experienced visions for years, this was something different. His secretary begged him to start writing again, but Aquinas repl ied, "I cannot. Such things have been revealed to me that what I have written seems but straw. Another prophet will come after me who is bigger yet, name of Maxim Gorki."
ellauri025.html on line 451: Tän esifasistisen runon lauloi näppyläinen Vesku Loiri levylle mädällä äänellä. Kupl a kurkussa. Synkronoinnin kannalta on sama, mitä uskontoa peukutetaan, niin kauan kun on joku. Tätä kantaa edusti Jean-Jacques Rousseau, joka oli kellosepän kisälli. Onnexi kännykät ottaa kellonajan netistä. Se on kaikille luurin käyttäjille sama. Google on niiden jumala, ja Larry Page profeetta.
ellauri025.html on line 471: Larry on yhdysvaltalainen liikemies. Se on maailman 8. rikkain apina, sen nettoarvo taaloissa on yli 60 ziljoonaa ja kasvava. Se on muutenkin HYVIN, HYVIN PAHA MIES. Sen suomenkielinen Wikipedia-artikkeli on tynkä. Sen amerikkalainen Wikipedia-artikkeli on kilometrin pituinen. Jo siitä näkee ketä Larryn puuhat hyödyttää. Nicholas Carlson (ei sukua) sanoo että siitä tuli paha, koska se luki kotosalla niin paljon ATK-lehtiä. Jätti kesken PhDn Winogradin kaa kun Gogol alkoi tuottaa massia. Gogolin nimi oli BackRub aluxi: Gogol toimi manus manum lavat periaatteella, hiero sä mun selkää niin mä hieron sun. Siitä luonnostaan syntyy näitä kupl ia. Toinen huisin kannattava idea oli Androidin osto ja puhelimiin levitys. Google pl us ja muut somevirityxet kaatuivat. Larry ei ole järin sosiaalinen. Nyze rakentaa izeohjautuvia lentoautoja. Se on Gyro Gearloosen näköinenkin, propellipäinen Pelle Peloton, vaihteet löyhällä. Lyö izeänsä päähän nuijalla niin että linnut lentää ulos pesästä.
ellauri025.html on line 604: Emmy haaveili countrylaulajaxi tulosta, siitä tuli eläinkaupan expediitti ja vanhan äijän panopuu, hans lilla knullgris. Lapsia ei tule vaikka äkistää. Koittaa pitää sitten pl okia ja taluttaa koiranpentua. Tää Kallsjö vois myös olla Westend. Tuleekohan Alex Stubb
ellauri025.html on line 624: Being in a band called Discipl es. Tätä hoetaan, on kai taas jonkun laulun sanoja. Niinkuin the Apostles, ne Cambridgen homot, creme de la creme.
ellauri025.html on line 635: I'm sick and tired of pl aying hard to get
ellauri025.html on line 650: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/10/H._P._Lovecraft%2C_June_1934.jpg/250px-H._P._Lovecraft%2C_June_1934.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri025.html on line 661: Mix Gusten repi LKV-dipl oomit seinältä ja riehui kuin Jankon Betonin Kalervo Jankko? "Aasia kunnossa." Koska sen äiti ei
ellauri025.html on line 684: Eteenpäin. Tää on yhtä tuskallista puurtamista kuin Rousseaun Juulia. Knullgris Emmyn kohtalo on totaalisen ennustettava, Maz pettää sitä gogetter exän kaa. Onnex Emmy alkaa odottaa, kaikki on taas hyvin muka. Paizi että Saga-Lill trollaa Emmyn pl okia. Mut Gusten on vielä koukussa et ei hätiä mitiä. Paizi että ei, menee perseesti, Maz jatkaa muhinaa Theresen kaa. Alla vet att han vänsterprasslar med sin ex, den suputen. Ollaanhan ankkalammikossa. Pieni ankan poikanen, uiskenteli veessä.
ellauri025.html on line 687: VIDEO
ellauri025.html on line 754: Being in a band called The Discipl es, taas. Nyt on jo luettava Wikipediaa. The Discipl es are a dub roots reggae group that was formed in 1986 by brothers Russ D. and Lol Bell-Brown. They are said to be named by Jah Shaka after producing exclusively for Jah Shaka. They recorded 4 albums of instrumental dub for Jah Shaka's King Of The Zulu Tribe label during 1987 to 1990.
Jotain neekereitä siis. Never heard.
ellauri025.html on line 770: Ja sit toi typerä kaiken valokuvaaminen, sitä mä en kans tajua. Plåta pl åta knäpp knäpp. Täytyy olla pahasti knäpp näpsiäxeen koko ajan kuvia. Niinkuin elämä olis joku elokuva. Kai se on sitä samaa mise en abimea skizoilua, näkee izensä näkemässä izensä näkemässä izensä, toisista puhumattakaan. Se er i spegeln nu gossar! Att det var en typisk våldsam våldtåkt, och som bäst var, det var massor av bilder av det.
ellauri025.html on line 799: Ei se Cosmo sit filmannukkaan sitä raiskausleffaa, vaan jonkun tylsän Lovecraft-pl äjäyxen Abben rahoilla. Nathan mukana, ne on nyt Schweizissä. Gusten on Emmyn ja Saga-Lillin kanssa kotona. Bambi näyttäytyy vaan Abben perintötaulussa. Sikäli kun tiedetään, se on vielä hengissä.
ellauri025.html on line 826: *The information was submitted by our reader Inez Rey. If you have a new more reliable information about net worth, earnings, pl ease,
ellauri025.html on line 864: Vuonna 2002 kirjailija Monika Fagerholm heräsi keskellä yötä kesäpaikassaan. Hän oli selvin päin, mutta tunsi olevansa kupl an sisällä eikä päässyt sieltä pois. Hän ajatteli kuolemaa. Ei pitäis käyttää Googlea, se tappaa.
ellauri025.html on line 872: Äidin kuoltua Monika velloi surussa viikkoja. Hän kuunteli autossa Leonard Cohenia ja kuvitteli, että se, mitä hän tunsi, oli surua. Tosiasiassa hän ei kyennyt tuntemaan mitään. Sen monen vuoden juominen oli tehnyt hänelle. Cohenin kuuntelu ja Dostojevskin pl äräys.
ellauri025.html on line 884: Nils-Erik oli myös hieno, joskin jo hieman horiseva textilingvisti Enkvist, jonka ryhmässä Åbossa työskentelivät Auli ja Rauha 70-luvulla. Jaakko ryhmineen kävi sitä tapaamassa Turussa. Se piirteli taululle jotain väkkäröitä. Myöhemmin käytiin kazomassa Aulin lehtolasta ison Paulin kupl afolkkarilla Turussa. I am not the father, sanoi Ferenc Kiefer kapakassa hampaat vinossa. Kotimatkalla tuli peltikolari ohitustilanteessa pakun kaa liukkaan kelin takia. Olin nalkissa.
ellauri025.html on line 921: Mä en tienny Monikasta mitään ennen tätä hälinää. (Sanoo musta massoja.) Siis tällänen tuuba saa sen sydämen pompsahtamaan. On se surkeaa, sanon kuin Pirkko Hiekkala. Äly hoi älä jätä. Ois vaan jatkanu älyllä, ois häslännyt vähemmän. Asiantuntijoiden mielestä (2kpl ) tää on sen huonoin kirja. (Tosin mä oon lukenut vaan tän, siis puolet tästä.) Ehkä vika on että se kirjoittaa nyt selvin päin.
ellauri026.html on line 19: PUNAVYÖN VANHAT YSTÄVÄT play:none">Hyötykirjoja
ellauri026.html on line 104: Rapukka (Lönnrot): en liten kräfta. Sommarhemin Finnträskistä tuli varsinkin alkuvuosina rapukoita merralla. Niin kuulemma Huitilanjoestakin, vaikka ei pitkään aikaan ole edes koettu. Rapukkakesteihin (kräftskiva tulee pöytälevystä) ostetaan valmiit ravut Mustasta Pekasta. Majalaiset ostaa lisäxi hirmu määrän pakastettuja täpl ärapuja, jotka Niklaxen on kaikki syötävä näyttääxeen rauhislaisille mistä kana kusee. Onkohan se se sama kana joka voi pamahtaa. Typerrä kana.
ellauri026.html on line 217: unawakening sleep, most pl easurable, most like unto death.
ellauri026.html on line 227: This is a famous line, but here it would hardly seem to merit its fame—who cares about peopl e “arguing about how tough they are”? The word here translated as “tough” just happens to be one of the central words of Hellenic thought: arete, “virtue” or “excellence,” that subject of so many subsequent philosophy lectures—whose learnability or unlearnability Plato made the subject of inquiry, and which Aristotle defined as a mean between two vices. The word can be used to mean something like “bravery,” but it is wildly broader and richer than “how tough one is” (there is a queen named Arete in the poem, but Wilson refrains from translating her as “Queen Tough”). The line was quoted over and over again in later days because it was considered the height of happiness for a man to have a son and grandson competing with each other to possess virtue or true excellence. This Wilson suppresses, as a thing irrelevant to contemporary idiom—“toughness” will have to serve in its pl ace.
ellauri026.html on line 257: Erasmus puolustelee izekehua, et se on parempi kuin palkata joku sykofantti kehumaan, niinkuin E. Saarinen kehumassa syylänaama Ploirin kupl ixi. Musta se on vittumaista että opiskelijoita opetetaan kädestä pitäen kehumaan izeänsä ja kauppaamaan omaa nahkaansa. Se on vitun kapitalismin viemistä viimeiseen pykälään, ihmiset tekee izestään kauppaa, tatuoivat vielä parasta ennen päivän niskaansa. Niinkuin orjat toisilleen Asterixin orjatorilla, "te olette vain sekundaa, helyjä, mä oon merkkitavara". No ize asiassa Erasmus on mun kanssa tässä samoilla linjoilla.
ellauri026.html on line 311: Erasmus ei hurjasti arvosta stoalaisuutta, haukkuu Catot ja Senecat ynnä muut sellaiset hapantelijat ihan pydeen. Lukianoskin, joka aloitti pl atonistina, siirtyi kyynikox ja siitä edelleen epikurolaisuuteen, haukkuen kaikki edelliset gurut lyttyyn yxi kerrallaan. Tässä mä oon taas ihan samoilla linjoilla.
ellauri026.html on line 372: On sellasia pytagoralaisia, joille kaikki on niin yhteistä et ne ottaa mitä vaan messiin mekon alla, ne ei tee siitä isompaa numeroa kuin jos ne olis perintökamoja. Toiset on vaan olevinaan rikkaita, ja tää kuvitelma riittää niille onnexi. Joillakuilla on hienot talot Helsingissä ja sen vuoxi pihistelee mökillä. Jotkut panee menee kaiken samantien, toiset kerää kokoon hyvällä tai pahalla. Yx ährää kerätäxeen julkkismainetta, toinen makaa nokisena uunin takana. A great many undertake endless suits and outvie one another who shall most enrich the dilatory judge or corrupt advocate. One is all for innovations and another for some great he-knows-not-what. Another leaves his wife and children at home and goes to Jerusalem, Rome, or in pilgrimage to St. James´s where he has no business. In short, if a man like Menippus of old could look down from the moon and behold those innumerable rufflings of mankind, he would think he saw a swarm of flies and gnats quarreling among themselves, fighting, laying traps for one another, snatching, pl aying, wantoning, growing up, falling, and dying. Nor is it to be believed what stir, what broils, this little creature raises, and yet in how short a time it comes to nothing itself; while sometimes war, other times pestilence, sweeps off many thousands of them together.
ellauri026.html on line 388: Ne onkin vixuimpia jotka pl agioivat toisten töitä omixeen, ja siirtää toisten kovalla vaivalla sepittämät jutut omiin töihinsä; ei väliä jos pl agiaatit selviävät myöhemmin, nyt ainakin ne saavat niistä ilmaista kunniaa, jengi osoittaa niitä haavi auki sormella ja läpyttää. Pääasia et oma nimi paistaa joka lehdellä. Se nimkin voi olla joltain kuuluisammalta kirjoittajalta nyysitty, jotta kansi kiinnittäisi rahvaan huomion kirjamyyynnissä. Ja kirjan nimi vielä, se voi olla vaikka "Kuka tappoi kenetkin".
ellauri026.html on line 390: Kaikista hulluinta on nähdä miten julkkiskirjailijat kiittelevät toisiaan keskinäisen kehun kerhoissa, tyhmät tyhmiä ja pöntöt viereisiä pönttöjä. Tää on täydellinen Väinö Linna dupl ikaatti, toi on Loirin haamukirjailijan veroinen, kolmas yhtä fixu ja filmaattinen kuin Sofi Oxanen. Toisen kerran ne suomii toisiaan yhtä reippaasti, ja ihan samoilla pointeilla.
ellauri026.html on line 434: Mutta olen puhunut ehkä liikaakin, liian röyhkeästi, ylittänyt aikani. Lieventävänä asianhaarana ota huomioon, että olen tyhmä ja sitäpaizi nainen. Niin et älkää ottako tätä liian vakavasti. Vizi vizi. Sanoo Erasmus ja virnistää kuin Eski Saarinen. Quare valete, pl audite, vivite, bibite, Moriae celeberrimi Mystae. (LÄPITTE!)
ellauri026.html on line 449: Tää oli tietty sen pahin vika. Ken ei oo meitin puolella on meitä vastaan. Tästä oli paavin palvojat ja protestanttifundamentalistit herttasen yximielisiä. Era vetelä vapaa-ajattelija jäi 2 tulen väliin makaamaan. Tyhmä kentiesmies , tupl aluopio, oljen verran raollaan. Koita päättää vetku ooko meitä vaiko noita toisia! Jenkkimumslimi sanoo selvästi: sillä oli 3 vaihtoehtoa: pitää turpa kii, liittyä meihin tai ryömiä paavin hameen alle. Se ei tehnyt niistä mitään vaan yritti viheltää pelin poikki. Turpiinhan siitä tulee molemmilta tiimeiltä. Vitun ize nimitetty erotuomari.
ellauri026.html on line 508: An article by the late Dr. R. Fruin, which came to my knowledge after the compl etion of the manuscript, quite confirms my view of the utter untrustworthiness of Erasmus´ accounts of his early life.
ellauri026.html on line 510: Froude's Life and Letters illustrates the author's familiar qualities,—his remarkable distinctness of view and his compl ete indifference to accuracy of detail.
ellauri026.html on line 516:
ellauri028.html on line 24: Nuoruuteni vuosina play:none">Nostalgiaa
ellauri028.html on line 40: Ruusu on ruusu, bisnes on bisnes, samojedi on samojedi. Nyt kepl otellaan sitten jonkun muun kanssa. Kepl otellaan, elellään, tuijotellaan taivasta timanteissa, kallis lukija! Psykofyysinen tilani on vallan mainio! Rautaa!
ellauri028.html on line 49: se maksoi 2 rupl aa ämpäri,
ellauri028.html on line 54: se maksoi kaksi (2) rupl aa ämpäri.
ellauri028.html on line 89: Initially, a surviving one of his daughters, Clara Clemens, objected to its publication in March 1939, probably because of its controversial and iconoclastic views on religion, claiming it presented a "distorted" view of her father. Henry Nash Smith helped change her position in 1960. Clara expl ained her change of heart in 1962 saying that "Mark Twain belonged to the world" and that public opinion had become more tolerant. (Ehkä se myös tarvizi vähän pätäkkää leivän syrjäxi.) She was also influenced to release the papers by her annoyance with Soviet reports that her father's ideas were being suppressed in the United States. (Ei Laika ole ainut koira radalla. Vuosi 1962 oli Kuuban kriisi, kylmä sota kuumeni. Popovin nuhruista mutta optimistista nuoruutta.) The papers were selected, edited and sequenced for the book in 1939 by Bernard DeVoto. (Sota tuli väliin, jumala piti varmistaa voittajien puolelle. No ainahan se on voittajien puolella. Tai sit se haluu antaa opetuxen tai sillä on joku ovelampi suunnitelma mielessä.)
ellauri028.html on line 100: Toinen aivan mainio kahden markan pl äjäys on What is man . Kyse on taas just samoista teemoista kuin mullakin, onx ihminen vaan tyhmä elukka vai vielä pahempaa, vaan kone, vaiko jotain hienoa, joku taskukokoinen puolijumala. Nuori mies uhoilee, vanha mies suhtautuu kyynisesti, ei enää edes sarkastisesti. (Joku kyllä kommentoi, fair enough, että näissä filosofisissa dialogeissa on aina joku fixu, esim. vanha mies, ja toinen totaalinen tomppeli, esim. nuori mies. Epistä, Joni heittää KOKO AJAN! valitti Pauli lumisodassa Juuan mökillä.) Erittäinkin hyvin väännettyjä pointteja. Mm. se LM Alcottin runotytön skizo et jos hyvis saa hyvät vibat kiltteydestä onx se sillon izekäs vai epä. Turhaa nikerrystä ja nakerrusta, mitä väliä. Hyvin menee mutta menköön. Who cares, kuten argumentoi Booze Hound alempana.
ellauri028.html on line 112: It was sometimes a wonderful and fearsome thing to watch Mr. Clemens pl ay billiards,” relates Elizabeth Wallace. “He loved the game, and he loved to win, but he occasionally made a very bad stroke, and then the varied, picturesque, and unorthodox vocabulary, acquired in his more youthful years, was the only thing that gave him comfort. Gently, slowly, with no profane inflexions of voice, but irresistibly as though they had the headwaters of the Mississippi for their source, came this stream of unholy adjectives and choice expl etives."
ellauri028.html on line 161: "Oh, no," repl ies the nurse, "I gave him eight tablets every two
ellauri028.html on line 165: "Oops, I gave him twelve tablets every one hour," repl ies the
ellauri028.html on line 170: "OH MY GOODNESS!" repl ies the nurse.
ellauri028.html on line 184: This was Twain's most serious, philosophical and private book. He kept it locked in his desk, considered it to be his Bible, and spoke of it as such to friends when he read them passages. He had written it, rewritten it, was finally satisfied with it, but still chose not to release it until after his death. It appears in the form of a dialogue between an old man and a young man who discuss who and what mankind really is and provides a new and different way of looking at who we are and the way we live. Anyone who thinks Twain was not a brilliant philosopher should read this book. We consider ourselves as free and autonomous peopl e, yet this book puts forth the ideas that 1) We are nothing more than machines and originate nothing - not even a single thought; 2) All conduct arises from one motive - self-satisfaction; 3) Our temperament is compl etely permanent and unchangeable; and 4) Man is of course a product of heredity, and our future, being fixed, is irrevocable -- which makes life compl etely predetermined. If these points are true, then buying and reading this book is not in your control, but simpl y must be done because it was meant to be. If these points are not true you might still wish to make an independent decision to enjoy a thought-provoking book by a great and legendary writer.
ellauri028.html on line 198: Apparently man is a selfish prick that can't think for himself and relies on "outside influences". He is a chameleon. He is nothing but a mere machine. Well, at least according to Twain. Man is a fraud and only lives for himself. He is really driving home this point that everyone is selfish and acts out of selfish needs (big surprise?), even if viewed (publicly and personally) as a self-sacrificing person. My question is; who cares? If the end result is the same, what does the actions matter. Let's say, saving a woman from a burning house. Twain says you do this out of making yourself feel good and avoiding the pain of not saving the woman, nothing else; the woman comes second to your own need of feeling good. But regardless of how it makes you feel, you still saved the woman in the end. The good is still done, even though you did it for yourself. Forget how the action was achieved. What does it matter if we refer to this as "self sacrificing" or "selfishness". Answer me this question, Twain! THE ACTION REMAINS THE SAME!!!.... I feel this must have been written during a time when everyone was going around smugly proclaiming to be self-sacrificing do-gooders and self-proclaimed religious nuts while really being shitty peopl e; which had to be the most annoying thing ever. I guess it feels a bit outdated and I think peopl e who naively go around claiming that they are "self-sacrificing do-gooders" are simpl y laughed at in our post modern times as smug assholes who need to get off their high horse (high horse? who owns a fucking horse nowadays, anyways?). I feel it is pretty accepted now that those who do good are doing them for their own selfish gains and the view of acceptance by others, at least I think this is the case. I don't know cause I don't know do-gooders, everyone I know (including myself) are dicks and more concerned with their celluar phones and creating social dating websites on the internet in vain attempts to pick up chicks only to drink alone and desperately spend several hours harassing women on social dating sites until one, out of pity, decides to respond to your 50 private messages, which then they foolishly decides to set up a date with you; only for you to be disappointed and stood up; which results in more drinking and paying a "dancer" to give you a hand job behind the goodwill on a Saturday night....
ellauri028.html on line 203: Sorry about that last paragraph, anyways, this could be one of the most easily readable and most underrated philosophical books ever. This is a read that delves into some deep thinking. Triggers the mind. In fact, my mind just got triggered. Why don't I just stop doing these reviews publicly and require peopl e to pay me for reviews rather than willingly expl oit myself as cheap and free entertainment? Why do I feel I need to keep doing these reviews? I am cutting myself short! Perhaps I would get more satisfaction out of keeping these reviews to myself? I don't know, who am I kidding... This is not entertaining the least and no person in their right mind would ever pay a dime for this drivel...I need another drink...
ellauri028.html on line 220: Mark Twain says that man is an automaton, compl etely stirred by outside influences, but the main motive for his deeds is always that they pl ease himself. That's no free will (hard determinism) and psychological egoism put together. I can't think of a nastier outlook on man. Better read his adventure books for kids. (less)
ellauri028.html on line 324: The Saint - Simon Templ ar -kirjaa, menisköhän tämäkin, kun kreikkakin.
ellauri028.html on line 378: You certainly did pl ay hell with me.
ellauri028.html on line 403: Because he had no pl ace to stop.
ellauri028.html on line 510: Pekka Kustaa Parkkinen (4. kesäkuuta 1940 Helsinki – 8. toukokuuta 1992 Helsinki) oli tuottelias suomalainen kirjailija ja kääntäjä. Proosassaan hän kuvasi väljällä, puheenomaisella kielellä näkemyksiään kulutusyhteiskunnan varjopuolista. Hänen teoksiensa hallitsevina aihepiireinä ovat rakkaus ja sen ristiriidat. Parkkista on kuvattu myös kommentoivaksi yhteiskuntakriitikoksi ja arjen kuvailijaksi. Runoilijana Parkkinen on (oli) aforistinen kiteyttäjä. Se löytyy kaljupäisen Tontin pl okista Unohdettuja runoilijoita.
ellauri028.html on line 574: Täällä valtakunnantyhjäntoimittaja Esa-Jouni Reikä-Saarinen ja puolustusvoimien simulaattorihankinnat! Maamme p-voimat on päättänyt hankkia jalkaväen taistelusimulaattorin! Vauzi vauz! Ja se oon mä! Tupl a vauz! Ei vaitiskaan, vizi vizi, pyydän anteexi. Läänineversti Karmei Enninen, olkaa hyvä, avaisitteko vielä vähän tätä? - Kiitos, ja anteexi että en sano kiitos, armeijassa ei sanota koskaan kiitos, anteexi tai ole hyvä, meillä se menee vaan: hommio! ja loppu! Täällä kannetaan vaan kaunaa, aseita ja arvomerkkejä. Simputetaan alaisia ja kannellaan esamiehistä toimivalle johdolle.
ellauri028.html on line 670: Hopealahnan pl atinaa
ellauri028.html on line 741: An elderly coupl e is vacationing in the west. Bob always wanted a pair of authentic cowboy boots. Seeing some on sale one day, he buys them, wears them home, walking proudly. He walks into their hotel room and says to his wife, "Notice anything different, Helen?"
ellauri028.html on line 749: Frustrated, Bob storms off into the bathroom, undresses, and walks back into the room compl etely naked, except for his boots.
ellauri028.html on line 757: To which Helen repl ies, "Shoulda bought a hat, Bob. Shoulda bought a hat."
ellauri029.html on line 18: ÖÖ MITÄ TARKOITAT play:none">Huuhaata
ellauri029.html on line 25: 1980-luvun alun kulttuuridebatin posketon pl äjäys.
ellauri029.html on line 43: Maa on täyttynyt talouslipilaareista (lue oikeistolaisista) ajatushautomoista, joissa izekkäitä pl äänejä haudotaan oikein tiimillä. Kaxikielisesti sanottuna lobbyja. Kaikkein traagisinta on, että oppilaitoxista kuten TAMK, jossa julkisrahoitteisesti yhdistyvät kapitalismin isokenkäiseen hiileen puhaltamaan liikemiesten perustamat Tampereen kauppaopisto, Tampereen kauppaoppilaitos, Teknillinen opisto (Suomen ensimmäinen), Tampereen teknillinen oppilaitos ym, on tullut tämmöisiä hautomoista, jotka julkaisevat opiskelijabroilerien surulliset teelmät suoraan netissä.
ellauri029.html on line 97: Tukevat penkit auttavat, opit nostamaan poskettoman määrän kupl ia suorin käsin penkiltä kuin Esa Saarinen! Valtaisa hämähäkinverkko liikekumppaneita, opiskeluheppuja ja lujasti alumiinia takaa hyvän viuhkan, läjittäin futuureja ja tsargoja!
ellauri029.html on line 114: What we learn from the books, we put straight into practice, in exampl e in the dialogues during training sessions or while working in the projects.
ellauri029.html on line 354: Hedonic psychology...is the study of what makes experiences and life pl easant or unpl easant. It is concerned with feelings of pl easure and pain, of interest and boredom, of joy and sorrow, and of satisfaction and dissatisfaction. It is also concerned with the whole range of circumstances, from the biological to the societal, that occasion suffering and enjoyment.
ellauri029.html on line 360: Toi kalskahtaa kyllä aika pahalta. Kahnemann apulaisineen kysyi 1998 opiskelijoilta "Does living in California make peopl e happy? A focusing illusion in judgments of life satisfaction". Olis pitänyt kysyä suomalaiselta koodarilta. Entäs sitten tää:
ellauri029.html on line 419: sulkee muita tekijöitä pois. Tää on vaan huumoripl äjäys, läppä läppä,
ellauri029.html on line 437: In internet, nobody knows you are a dog.
Kupl at kannattaa niille jotka tekee kupl ia.
ellauri029.html on line 461: Anterokeskeinen ajattelu on izekeskeisen ajattelun rasistinen versio. Elukat jotka on samanlaisia "kuin me", mutta erivärisiä tai pitää erilaista ääntä, kuten neekerit, juutalaiset, saxalaiset ja muut apinat, on ihan erilaisia ja ennen kaikkea pahempia "kuin me". Ne ei ajattele, tunne, käyttäydy hyvin eikä ansaize samaa kohtelua "kuin me". Elukat jotka on ihat erilaisia kuin me, kuten sitten kaikki muut elukat, eivät edes tunne samoja tunteita eikä tarpeita "kuin me", ne ei siis ansaize mitään muuta kuin tulla syödyxi tai tapetuxi muuten vaan. Mitkä vitun "me"? Valkoinen vääpeli underground sarjakuvassa huusi neekerikersantille Vietnamin sodassa: "We must kill the yellow commies, before they kill us!". "What do you mean we?" kysyi kersantti. Tähän kuuluu myös se et ezii jotain anterouden perimmäistä olemusta tai selitystä, mix me ollaan niin eteviä ja hienoja. Ei me olla. Sillä hyvä. Me ollaan pikku paskiaisia pienenä, ja isona kusipäitä pyllynreikiä. Siitä ei pääse edes kysymällä "ketkä me?". Vastaus on selvä: Sinä, minä ja Hentun Liisa, Puntun Paavo ja Juorkunan Jussi, Kapakka-Lassi ja Myllårin Matti, pl us yli 9 miljardia muuta. Täytyy lukea Mark Twainin Matkakirjeitä maasta (1909).
ellauri029.html on line 486: Ja yhä pöntöt inttävät. Pönttöys on sisäänrakennettu termiittiapinaan, ei se siitä pääse enempää kuin E.Saarinen leobardintäpl istään.
ellauri029.html on line 672:
play:block">
ellauri029.html on line 686: Anch`io sono pittore! o Son pittore anch`io! es una frase atribuida a Correggio, quien se supone la pronunció al contem
pl ar un cuadro de Rafael, según unos autores la Madonna Sixtina y según otros, el Éxtasis de Santa Cecilia. Tätä läppää ei löydy italiankielisestä wikipediasta. Encyclopedia Britannican mielestä se on urbaani legenda.
ellauri029.html on line 910: The question is, is satire or sarcasm ever appropriate? This would be easy enough to resolve if not for the fact that God uses satire in several
pl aces in Scripture. For exam
pl e, Paul’s words in this passage:
ellauri029.html on line 920: Other passages in the Bible that use satire include Isaiah’s ridicule of idol-makers (Isaiah 40:19-20), God’s taunting of Egypt (Jeremiah 46:11), and Elijah’s gibes directed at the prophets of Baal (1 Kings 18:27). Jesus Himself used satire in the form of hyperbole when He told His hearers to “take the
pl ank out of your own eye” (Matthew 7:5).
ellauri029.html on line 922: Therefore, we can say that irony is fine; irony is a figure of speech that can bring attention and clarity to a situation. Sometimes, irony can be painful because the truth it reveals is convicting. Satire, which uses irony to gently deride and prompt needful change, can be appropriate on occasion; we have exam
pl es of satire in Scripture.
ellauri030.html on line 18:
NOT SURE IF HOMELESS play:none">Vanhuudesta
ellauri030.html on line 28: Cicero sai teokseensa paljon vaikutteita varhaisemman kreikkalaisen filosofian dialogeista. Hän jäljittelee Platonin Valtiossa ja Faidonissa käytyjä keskusteluja ja on kääntänyt teokseensa kohtia Ksenofonin dialogista Talouden taito. Muodoltaan ja tyyliltään teos muistuttaa kuitenkin enemmän Aristoteleen dialogeja. Lienee
pl agioinut Aristonia Khioxelta, stoalaista, jolla oli myös joku valoisa vanhuus- nide, tosin kadonnut. (Siseroko tahallansa hävitti? Pikku pullon hukkasi.)
ellauri030.html on line 63: Cicero oli optimaatti eli kokkare, Catilina ja Caesar sai äänet
pl ebeijeiltä. Konsulixi kivuttuaan Cicero osti lainarahalla ökykämpän Rooman Bulevardilta. Sen vastustaja ja naapuri Clodius takavarikoi kämpän ja hajotti sen maan tasalle, vähän olivat kuin Peter Nygård ja sen miljonääri naapuri Pekoni. Maanpaossa Kreikassa Cicero vänisi ja harkizi jo harakiriä. Pompeius kuzu sen takasin jelppimään diktatuuria. Se tuli ja yritti taas pistellä Caesaria, pieleen meni, minkä jälkeen se alkoi nuolla diktaattoreja.
ellauri030.html on line 96: Kaikki huusi Cato, se on Mauno Mato! Tän turauxen Cicero kirjoitti 62-vuotiaana vuonna 44 ennen Kristusta. Se
pl agioi ensi kädessä Xylofonia sekä lättänenän fasistin Valtio-teosta ja sen uskonto
pl äjäystä Faidonia. Saatto sillä olla joku tuntemattomampikin kreikkalainen vanhusten izehoitokirja esikuvana.
ellauri030.html on line 98: Tämmöiset soveltavan filosofian etiikka
pl äjäyxet palveli antiikissa samaa tehtävää kuin sittemmin saarnakokoelmat eli postillat. Sellasen ääressä istuessa tuntuu vanhuus vähän paremmalta, ainakin näkee ettei ole ainoa asiasta kärsijä.
ellauri030.html on line 99: Oli Cicerolla siinä poliittinenkin taka-ajatus, se suizutti siinä ohessa taas tasavallan eli yläluokan hallinnoiman repu
pl iikin puolesta. Entisvanhaan oli ylemmällä keskiluokalla ohjat handussa, ei keulineet
pl ebeijit eikä öykkäröineet uusrikkaat diktaattorit.
ellauri030.html on line 109: Kikhernekehoinen englannintaja (alla) kertoo Marcus Porcius Cato Censoriuxesta tarkemmin. Se syntyi tuskulumissaan Latiumissa ehkä 234 eKr ja kuoli ysärinä. Se oli ahnas
pl ebeijinousukas. Perheen nimi oli Porcius (porsastelija? sikala?), lisänimi Cato tarkottaa kattia. Se oli varmaan jotenkin kissamainen, pitkäkyntinen rähisijä. Enemmän kuin Sapiens, millä nimellä se tunnettiin myöhemmin. Sillä oli vahvuuxia mutta vitusti myös vikoja. Sillä ei ollut mitään vuorisaarnan "autuaita ovat" ominaisuuxia, vaikka kovana käräjöijänä se varmaan ajatteli olevansa vanhurskas. Se oli todenpuhuja, suoraselkäinen, rohkea ja isänmaallinen, kiltti perheenisä kuten moni muukin nazi. Mutta se oli pihi saituri, hirveä styränki, paha vihollinen, ja pysyi poissa paheista vaan yleisön silmissä. Sitä ihannoitiin myöhemmin tyyppiroomalaisena, kai sen puutteet oli jo unohtuneet tai kuului asiaan.
ellauri030.html on line 182:
Joo nopperit ja ristisanat ja vanhojen tanssit pl us:
ellauri030.html on line 246: Etenim, cum compl ector animo, quattuor reperio causas, cur senectus misera videatur: unam, quod avocet a rebus gerendis; alteram, quod corpus faciat infirmius; tertiam, quod privet fere omnibus voluptatibus; quartam, quod haud procul absit a morte.
ellauri030.html on line 250: Kohtaan 1) katixi naamioituneen papukauppiaan vasta-argumentit ovat: älä mene eläkkeelle, jatka horisemista johtoportaassa (esimerkkejä)! Menikö muisti? Älä välitä, mulla on tässä paljon esimerkkejä semmoisista joilta EI mennyt, eikös se lohduta? Relevantimpaa ois mainita sellasia kuin Kekkonen tai Paavi JP Kakkoineen, joilta meni hengenlahjat ja silti ne jatkoi horisemista johtoportaassa. Vittu et on sit heikkoa argumentointia. Sisero ei paljon piittaa impl ikaationuolten suunnasta, vielä vähemmän todennäköisyyxistä.
ellauri030.html on line 262: Hampaikas Manius Curius Dentatus paahtoi mieluummin turnipseja kuin otti lahjuxia samnilaisilta. Se oli siitä nautinnollista. Sehän olis ollut epikuurista, ellei esimerkin pointti olis, että se kieltäytyi siten isommasta nautinnosta, rahalahjuxesta, koska siitä oli niin kivaa uhrautua omien rahaporhojen edestä. (Se oli pl ebeiji.) Upotti hampaat turnipsiin ja kuuras miljardööriankkojen mania. Se oli sankari. Syntyi hampaat valmiina suussa.
ellauri030.html on line 268: Parasta vanhan hopeäselän elossa on arvovalta! (Jos sitä on - jos ei ole sori vaan, oma moka, olisit ollut aikaisemmin sepompi.) Esim Samuli Rusko-oja, nilkki perustolvana, joka paistatteli loppupäivät ansiottoman arvonnousun valossa. Vähemmän duunia, enemmän auktoriteettia. atque huius extrema aetas hoc beatior quam media, quod auctoritatis habebat pl us, laboris minus; apex est autem senectutis auctoritas.
Vanhuus, kun siihen liittyy korkeimmat luottamustehtävät, on niin arvovaltaa täynnä, että se korvaa kaikki nuoruuden nautinnot. Kaikki tottelee sun pelkkää nyökkäystä. Habet senectus, honorata praesertim, tantam auctoritatem, ut ea pl uris sit quam omnes adulescentiae voluptates. Non in sententia solum, sed etiam in nutu residet auctoritas.
ellauri030.html on line 343: Epiktetos on saattanut vähän pl agioida Jeesusta. Se mainizeekin galilealaiset kolleegansa jossakin. Tän huomas kirkkoisä Aku, ja aleksandrialainen Klemetti. Ahkerat kädet on sitten löytäneet jopa 200 lainausta, siitä tulis Urkundissa jo aika meteli. Sillä kuten Jessellä on uskonto ja moraali samalla jalustalla, 2 sanaa vaan: don't accept substitutes. On vaan 1 jumala kaikille yhteisesti, vain yxi pelastusovi, yhtä suvaizematon on impulssiostoskin. Ei voi rakastaa jumalaa ja maailmaa, you can't have both, sanoi Naipaulin isäkin. Koita päättää. Mut voi olla rakastamatta kumpaakaan! Mun päätös on jo tehty.
ellauri030.html on line 399: Höh. Olen rikas, tietysti. Mulla on uljas hevonen, onx sulla? Mullon Tesla, sulla on vaan toi vanha auto, joka näyttää kulkeutuneen perintönä Kivisiltä ja Sorasilta. (tähän kuva) Tätä harrastaa Riitta Roth ihan sikana, sen tiimi laajenee kulloisenkin kerskuntatarpeen mukana, venyy ja paukkuu kuin saippua- tai purkkakupl a.
ellauri030.html on line 510: Kolmikyppisenä Arttu naiskeli jotain laulajatarta, mutta epäili sitä (ehkä syystä) tautisexi, eikä menty naimisiin. Size palas Berliiniin, mut sen luennot kaikui tyhjille saleille vieläkin. Koleran aikaan Arttu häipy Frankfurtiin, ja vaati että laulajatar ois jättänyt 9-vuotiaan pikkupoikansa kolerakaupunkiin. Se ei suostunut, ja niille tuli bänet. Nelikymppisenä sillä oli uusi hani kiikarissa, 17-vuotias neizykäinen, mut tää ei ollut kiinnostunut. Schopenhauer jäi Frankfurtiin ja kirjoitteli lisää parannuxia Kantin prujauxiin. Äiti kuoli 1838, Arttu oli 50. Arttu kirjoitti pari pl äjäystä etiikasta ja voitti norjalaisen palkinnon.
ellauri030.html on line 524: Naisten kanssa ei "ihmisillä" voi olla muuta hommaa kuin bylsintä, sillä kaikki "hienompi rakkaus", mitä se sitten onkaan, on kaikki lähtöisin pyllystä ja päätyy sinne. Naimisiin se ei halunnut (kotona oli varmaan ollut kamalaa): Puolisot tekee parhaansa ollaxeen ällöttäviä toisilleen. "Ihmisten" oikeudet puolitetaan ja velvollisuudet tupl ataan. On kuin ottais säkillisen käärmeitä ja toivois löytävänsä ankeriaan joukosta.
ellauri030.html on line 657: Täähän testi on ihan perseestä! Miten noi piirteet muka on tekemisissä pessimismin ja optimismin kanssa? Mix rentoutuminen ja kiireisyys menee tolla lailla? Hizi onhan vaikka kuinka paljon häslääviä sangviinisia optimisteja, vaikka Eski Saarinen, ja veteliä uneliaita pessimistejä, vaikka mä tai Oblomov. Entä sit toi seurallisuus, ei kai sekään aina liity tähän. Optimisteissa on psykopaatteja, joilla ei edes ole kunnon ystäviä. Ei ihmekään jos tää testi ei toimi, se mittaa yhtä aikaa monta luonteenpiirrettä, pl us izetuntoa. Inhoon tälläsiä HS selvitti tunarointeja. Ne on yhtä tyhjän kaa, ellei pahempaa, täysin harhaanjohtavia.
ellauri030.html on line 696: Although most peopl e value humor, philosophers have said little about it, and what they have said is largely critical.
ellauri030.html on line 732: Sudden glory, is the passion which makes those grimaces called laughter; and is caused either by some sudden act of their own, that pl eases them; or by the apprehension of some deformed thing in another, by comparison whereof they suddenly appl aud themselves. And it is incident most to them, that are conscious of the fewest abilities in themselves; who are forced to keep themselves in their own favor by observing the imperfections of other men. And therefore much laughter at the defects of others, is a sign of pusillanimity. For of great minds, one of the proper works is, to help and free others from scorn; and to compare themselves only with the most able.
ellauri030.html on line 802: Man is the only animal that laughs and weeps: for he is the only animal that is struck with the difference between what things are, and what they ought to be. We weep at what thwarts or exceeds our desires in serious matters; we laugh at what only disappoints our expectations in trifles… . To expl ain the nature of laughter and tears, is to account for the condition of human life; for it is in a manner compounded of the two! It is a tragedy or a comedy—sad or merry, as it happens… . Tears may be considered as the natural and involuntary resource of the mind overcome by some sudden and violent emotion, before it has had time to reconcile its feelings to the change of circumstances: while laughter may be defined to be the same sort of convulsive and involuntary movement, occasioned by mere surprise or contrast (in the absence of any more serious emotion), before it has time to reconcile its belief to contrary appearances (Hazlitt 1819, 1).
ellauri030.html on line 859: Komedia soveltuu paremmin markkinatalouteen, jossa eliitti pysyttelee mieluummin kulisseissa. Tragedia ei edes ole mikään genre enää. Jos leffa ei ole komedia, se on seikkailua tai actionia (homeerista mätkintää) tai draamaa (ihmissuhdescheissea ilman nauruja). Draama tulee kai lähimmäx entisvanhaa tragediaa. Kaikista homeerisimmissakin sankarileffoissa on koomisia kevennyxiä. (Niistä vastaa usein sankarin sivuvaunu pl us konnakopl a.)
ellauri030.html on line 877: 13 Multipl e Genres 44 $37,024,971 4,437,318 0.02%
ellauri030.html on line 887: Most peopl e would die sooner than think — in fact they do so” (1925a, 166).
ellauri030.html on line 891: Filosofit mielellään pl agioi nykyään sarjixia: Seinfeld and Philosophy (2002), The Simpsons and Philosophy (2001), Woody Allen and Philosophy (2004), and Monty Python and Philosophy (2006). Plato and Platypus Walked into a Bar … : Understanding Philosophy through Jokes (2008). Heidegger and a Hippo Walk Through Those Pearly Gates: Using Philosophy (and Jokes!) to Expl ore Life, Death, the Afterlife, and Everything in Between (2009). Vizit menee nykyään paremmin kaupaxi kuin ryppyozaisuus. Aletaan olla tilanteessa, joka on toivoton, mutta toivottavasti ei sentään vakava.
ellauri030.html on line 899: Tendentious jokes are jokes that contain lust, hostility, or both. William Shakespeare’s Falstaff would be an exampl e of Freud's "comic," generating laughter by expressing previously repressed inhibition.
ellauri030.html on line 905: Freud’s humoristic theory, like most of his ideas, was based on a dynamic among id, ego, and super-ego. Marx brothers like. The commanding superego likes to impede the ego from seeking pl easure for the id, or to momentarily adapt itself to the demands of reality, a mature coping method.
ellauri030.html on line 906: Moreover, Freud (1960) followed Herbert Spencer's ideas of energy being conserved, bottled up, and then released like so much steam venting to avoid an expl osion. Freud was talking about psychic or emotional energy, and this idea is now thought of as the relief theory of laughter.
ellauri030.html on line 910: An analysis of content from business-to-business advertising magazines in the United States, United Kingdom, and Germany found a high (23 percent) overall usage of humor. The highest percentage was found in the British sampl e at 26 percent. Of the types of humor found by McCullough and Taylor, three categories corresponded with Freud's grouping of tendentious (aggression and sexual) and non-tendentious (nonsense) wit. 20 percent of the humor were accounted for as “aggression” and “sexual.” “Nonsense” was listed at 18 percent.
ellauri030.html on line 913: Altman, N. (2006). And now for something compl etely different: Humor in psychoanalysis. Psychoanalytic Dialogues, 16(5), 573–577.
ellauri030.html on line 914: Misattribution is one of many theories of humor that describes an audience´s inability to identify exactly why they find a joke to be funny. Freud declared peopl e incapable of knowing exactly what it is they find amusing due to the compl ex nature of their conscious and subconscious minds.
ellauri030.html on line 916: Tendentious humor involves a "victim", someone at whose expense we laugh. Non-tendentious humor does not require a victim. This innocuous humor typically depends on wordpl ay, and Freud believed it has only modest power to evoke amusement. Tendentious humor, then, is the only kind that can evoke big laughs. It's the only kind to be found in religious works.
ellauri030.html on line 921: For exampl e, characters in a working-class family may banter back and forth about paying bills or finding a more respected or higher-paying job. The delivery of dialog may come across as funny for an audience who believes the humor comes from the antagonistic relationship between the two characters. But the real hostile nature of the joke involves class and economic issues that are otherwise not funny.
ellauri030.html on line 924: Similar analysis can be appl ied to issues involving racial discrimination, sexual deviance, drug abuse, and other controversial issues. I.e. about all of EAT! FUCK! and KILL!
ellauri030.html on line 1028: Senipl ex
ellauri030.html on line 1053: Söisin mäkin jos olis vielä Senipl exiä.
ellauri031.html on line 17: En yrhätta play:none">Yrsel
ellauri031.html on line 43: Senare började han önska att han skulle kunna fråga myrorna många andra frågor, såsom "tycker du om ditt jobb? Är du en slav? Är du lycklig?" Det märkvärdiga var att han inte kunde ställa dessa frågor. För att ställa dem borde han ha översatt dem på myrspråket - men han märkte med en känsla av hjälpl öshet att det inte fanns ord för de saker som han ville säga. Det fanns inga ord för lycka, för frihet, för tyckande, inte heller ord för deras motsatser. Han kände sig som en stum man som försöker skrika "elden är lös!" Det närmaste han kunde komma till rätt eller fel var at säga "snärtigt" eller "fittigt". Snart märkte han att dessa två var de enda två adjektiv i språket som täckte alla värdefrågorna.
ellauri031.html on line 118: Låtom oss ha en annan tankerunda på det hela. Månne inte Dittes pl an har varit at lära norska barn en läxa: lilla yrhättan är ett dåligt exempel, alla hennes rackartyg är saker som barn inte ska göra? Antagligen. Men på samma tid är de här lika säkert genuina barndomsminnen, och Ditten var väl just en sådan liten skit. Det är inte alldeles klart at läxan går hem, då Ditten inte får tillräckligt stryk, men det kan tänkas vara en pl us för boken. Kanske den här boken är intressant ändå när allt kommer omkring. Men riktigt tycka om Y kan man inte, nehej. Nä-hä.
ellauri031.html on line 155: Språket i armén har just samma användning som uniformen. Det är inte bara på grund av brist pä fantasi att stampersonalen och underbefälet jämt och ständigt använder exakt de samma orden och uttrycksformlerna. Det är också ett sätt at ge ordern institutionell betydelse. Det är armén som ger order genom en förmans mun. Underordnad blir konditionerad att lyda reflexartigt, utan att tänka. För detta ändamål är det viktigt att använda de rätta ordern. En hund som har lärt sig att sitta på kommandot "sitt!" gör inget om någon ber den slå sig ner, eller ta pl ats.
ellauri031.html on line 161: Vad handlar Dragsviks slang om? I detta avseende kan man göra några allmänna iakttagelser: slangbenämningar för det mesta för viktiga föremål, människogrupper, pl atser och aktiviteter. Jag har räknat bland mina ca 100 slangord 23 namn av föremål (tex blåpitt 'smällpatron', cha-cha 'stridsbälte', dagatätchi 'dagtäcke', knaku 'knäckebröd', ludiskuffare 'skinnmössa, mullibok 'blå anteckningsbok', permischan 'permissionsuniform', pisisträtchi 'RUoSk elevband'); 31 benämningar av människor (tex gurka 'GrKist', gummipitt 'nylänning', krycka 'underhållskompanist eller befriad', lingonpitt 'artillerist', mink 'ny gruppchef', pampusch 'österbottning', pngvin 'lustigkurre', tryckpåsa '11 månaders karl', yrboll 'dumbom'), och 20 benämningar av pl ats eller aktivitet (tex bordell 'förvirring', civail 'det civila', kvällsare 'kvällspermission', pampas 'Österbotten', rumba 'extra övning', turbo 'arméns tvättanordning', väijy 'vakt').
ellauri031.html on line 205: Tähän suuntaanhan se sittemmin on mennytkin, paizi kumikana Berner ehdotti koko VR:n siirtämistä korvauxetta suoraan yrityxille. Saisivat sitten päättää kannattaako Helsinki-Kemijärvi välillä pitää junayhteyttä ollenkaan, vai puretaanko rata ja myydään kiskot virolaisille romuna. Viron palkkataso on noussut niin paljon, että pianaikaa alkavat tähyillä sinne rakennustöihin täkäläisiä poroja. Jahka Peter Vesterbackan pl ääni toteutuu, koko konkkaronkka Kemijärveltä pohjoiseen voidaan kuskata Viroon vierastyöläisixi rekoilla. Ei tarvita junia eikä veronkantosiipialuxia.
ellauri031.html on line 389: och ändå dagligt är pl akat
ellauri031.html on line 401: vid templ ets genljud reser dig,
ellauri031.html on line 410: pl är dina vänner häda jämt
ellauri031.html on line 642: Jaffan arabit suunnitteli keskenään: vallataan Tel Aviv, sinä otat tuon talon ja minä tämän. Tapetaan miehet ja jaetaan naiset keskenämme. Tää kuulostaa kyllä ihan vanhan testamentin pl ääniltä, tai pohjalaisilta: tapa sinä Kauhavan ruma vallesmanni, niin minä nain sen komian lesken. Appelsiinilimusta ja kukoistushuipuista käydään kärhämää. Mä ihmettelin pienenä miten voi olla kaupunki jonka nimenä on limu. Abrahamin perhe riitelee. Ja Öljymäki on halkeemassa kahtia, jeesuxen toinen tuleminen on tulossa. Eikö se nyt vois jo haleta? Mikä maxaa?
ellauri031.html on line 661: Jutkukouluissa on aapisena raamattu. Niitä ei ollut tarpeexi. Kierot lähetit lahjoittivat ilmaisi pipl ioita, joissa oli uusi diili mukana. Ortodoxijutkut hurjistuivat, kiellettiin niiden tuonti. Hassuhattu tupsukorva hasidi näki Kaarlon ize teossa ja alkoi rähistä. Onnexi jumalalla on niskaote jahvesta. Kaarlo tuntee nipun puolikuivureita korkeissa paikoissa, mutta sekään ei aina auta mäessää. Kokokuivureita on joukossa noin 15%, mutta niiden valta valitussa kansassa on paljon suurempi.
ellauri031.html on line 666: Jumala järjesti niinkin, että jahven palvojat pysäytti Israelin ainoan paperitehtaan, kun sen piipusta nousi kaasua sapattinakin kuin Birkenausta. Ei tullut paperi koosera, sillä ei voi pyyhkiä edes kooseria pyllyä. Syntyi kauhea pipl iapula, ja hörhöpipl iat meni kuin kuumille kiville. Kauppa käy kuin siimaa, hykertelee syväntöläiset käsiä. Hintakin on kohallaan kun ovat ilmasia. Kaarlon kpl on mennyt 100K, brittipiispan vaan vaivaset 1800. Kate on kyllä parempi.
ellauri031.html on line 708: Tytöt pääsi kouluun Israelissa. Kiltistä Liljasta tuli sairaanhoitaja. Mirkku kuopus oli yhtä hemmo kuin Pylkkäs-kaimansa, nykräs yhtä sun toista kermaperseisesti, sai sentään hukin tehtyä ja nai onnexi jenkkilähetyssaarnaajan pojan. Varmaan jotain norjalaisia kun pojan nimikin on Halvor. Mirjasta tuli amatööripsykologi ja dipl omikielenkääntäjä. Kuinka ollakkaan. Kaarlo on siitä silminnähden ylpeä. Tais olla isin tyttö vaikkei edes tuntenut isäänsä pienenä. Mirjan Halvor-miestä ei näy kuvaliitteen kuvissa, eikä lapsia, jos niitä oli. Nyt olis ollut orpo Ollin kiva vittuilla vähän takas isälle, mut se ehti kuolla.
ellauri031.html on line 710: Ikkunattomasta rottelosta perhe muutti kaupunkiin kaltereilla varustettuun pieneen lukaaliin. Ei vesihanaa, paskahuusi pihalla. Sitten jossain entisesä pensionaatissa 10v (niillä ramppas koko ajan vieraita Suomesta joista ne sai pientä airbnb tienestiä) ja 1963 omaan taloon kuumien lähteiden lähelle, herran korvauxena Muuramen talosta. Jonka se oli kyllä myynyt Kaarlolle halvalla ja maxanut jo käyvän hinnan. Mut herra maxaakin kaiken tupl ana, hyvän niinkuin pahan. Niin Mairekin, joka sukelsi Gennesaretin järven syvännöstä Kaarlo kullalle uuden kultaisen vihkisormuxen. Oli liian iso Mairelle, eikähän niitä käy pienentäminen. Sekin maxaa.
ellauri031.html on line 750: Olavi Syväntöä haastateltiin TV-7:n ohjelmaan player/6228/">Ajankohtaista taivaasta ehkä millenniumin vaihteessa. (Ohjelmatietojen 1970 on takuulla painovirhe, silloinhan Kaarlo oli vielä vauhdissa. Olavi shihishee tässä ohjelmassa jo aika vanhushmaiseshti.) Kiinnostaa, sillä täähän Olavi on aika lailla samanlainen surullinen hahmo kuin Wilho Olavi, karismaattisemman Wilhon seuraaja, samanlainen vähäisempi toimittaja, pikkuprofeetta.
ellauri031.html on line 789: Hans far var gresk, hans mor av egyptisk opprinnelse. Han ble som liten adoptert av den norske miljonærfamilien Gunnerius Tollefsen, og han kom til Norge i 1930, som et av de første adoptivbarn, fra et land utenfor Norden. Minos hadde sin frelsesoppl evelse allerede som fireåring og begynte å preke i Dals-Ed i Sverige ved femårsalderen. Da han var sju år hadde han lest hele Bibelen.
ellauri031.html on line 802: Flere år senere, på 1990-tallet, fant Minos igjen det han hadde skrevet og ble svært forundret. Samfunnet hadde endret seg slik at det som stod i profetien om ekteskap i oppl øsning, samboere, umoralsk bilder på TV (internett), ikke lengre var en radikal profeti, men et speilbilde av verden.
ellauri031.html on line 808: Anna höpsismin ratkaista! Tämä Aku Ankan puhekupl a oli Pirkko Hiekkalalle mieluinen.
ellauri032.html on line 19: Supikoira play:none">Hajuviestejä
ellauri032.html on line 32: That which perhaps may most offend, are certain Texts of Holy Scripture, alledged by me to other purpose than ordinarily they use to be by others. You may be pl eased to excuse your selfe, and say that I am a man that love my own opinions, and think all true I say.
ellauri032.html on line 78: Calvinin melkein jo kuoltua syntyi Arminius , joka alkoi vääntää veistä Jounin nahkatakissa. Erimielisyys koski pelastamista, eli onko jotkut etukäteen kuumaan paikkaan määrätty, vai voiko pahat teot jotenkin vielä sopia. Vanha kirkkoisäkiista Hipon Akun ja Pelagiuxen välillä kupl i pintaan pitkän tauon perästä. Hollantilaiset kalvinistit tiivisti kalvinismin viiteen pointtiin, tulppaaniin eli TULIP.
ellauri032.html on line 97: Arminiusta on syytetty kyllä ansaintamoraalista. Esim Descartes oli niillä linjoilla. Encyclopedia Britannican sivustolla sanotaan, että Descartesin moraali oli anti-Jansensistista ja anti-Calvinistista, ja et sen mielestä armo ansaitaan olemalla oikein kilttejä. Se oli optimisti, ihmisen järki ja tahto pystyy vaikka mahdottomaan. Se ei ollut pessimisti niinkuin jansenisti Blaise Pascal (1623-62), joka meinas et pelastus on vaan ilmainen lahja niille, jotka sattuu sen saamaan. Pascal eli lyhyen elämän, armonisku tuli äkkiä. Descartesia haukuttiin tämän takia Arminiuslaisexi. Descartesin mielestä ei ole mitään järkeä olla kunnollinen, ellei usko kuolemanjälkeiseen elämään ja loppuarvontaan. No nettisivuja ei pidä ottaa liian kirjaimellisesti, niissä on monia vaihtoehtoisia totuuxia, kupl amuovia kullekin, paukutettavaxi oman maun mukkaan.
ellauri032.html on line 126: Teini-iässä Pascalin perhe muutti Roueniin. Muuton taustalla on kerrottu tarina, kuinka isä-Pascal riitaantui kardinaali Armand de Richelieun kanssa mitättömästä veroasiasta ja kardinaalin raivoa peläten perhe joutui piiloutumaan maan alle. Perheen maineen pelasti sittemmin Jacqueline, joka esiintyi nimettömänä eräässä Richelieuta huvittaneessa näytelmässä. Saatuaan tietää, että hänet hurmannut näyttelijätär oli erään hänen vihamiehensä tytär, kardinaali antoi Pascalin perheelle anteeksi ja sijoitti isä-Pascalin poliittisen virkaan Roueniin. Mitähän Jacqueline antoi kardinaalille? Kompl imentin, sanoo ranskixet. Joopa joo. Tää on se sama paha Richelieu joka kiusasi d´Artagnania ja muita muskettikoiria. Ja sama Richelieu joka pani hanttiin mun sukulaisille 30-vuotisessa sodassa. Karsee ilkiö. Pascalien osakkeille tuli pohjanoteeraus, kiitos Richelieun.
ellauri032.html on line 169: Joie, joie, joie, pl eurs de joie.
ellauri032.html on line 207: Richard Dawkins kehitti teekannuteemaa vielä pitemmälle kirjassaan A Devil’s Chapl ain:
ellauri032.html on line 221: Thomas Stearns Eliot OM (26 September 1888 - 4 January 1965) was a poet, essayist, publisher, pl aywright, and literary and social critic. Born in St. Louis, Missouri, to a prominent Boston Brahmin family, he moved to England in 1914 at the age of 25 and went on to settle, work and marry there. He became a British subject in 1927 at the age of 39, subsequently renouncing his American citizenship.
ellauri032.html on line 245: To understand the method which Pascal empl oys, the reader must be prepared to follow the process of the mind of the intelligent believer. The Christian thinker – and I mean the man who is trying consciously and conscientiously to expl ain to himself the sequence which culminates in faith, rather than the public apologist – proceeds by rejection and elimination. … To the unbeliever, this method seems disingenuous and perverse: for the unbeliever is, as a rule, not so greatly troubled to expl ain the world to himself, nor so greatly distressed by its disorder; nor is he generally concerned (in modern terms) to ‘preserve values’. He does not consider that if certain emotional states, certain developments of character, and what in the highest sense can be called ‘saintliness’ are inherently and by inspection known to be good, then the satisfactory expl anation of the world must be an expl anation which will admit the ‘reality’ of these values. Nor does he consider such reasoning admissible; he would, so to speak, trim his values according to his cloth, because to him such values are of no great value. The unbeliever starts from the other end, and as likely as not with the question: Is a case of human parthenogenesis credible? and this he would call going straight to the heart of the matter.
ellauri032.html on line 343: Tosi ja epätosi on lauseen attribuutteja. Ei Hobbes pohdi miten ne annetaan. Parmenideen (ja vähän Platoninkin) mielestä se oli ihan outoa, kai koska ne piti kielen mallina noita aataminaikuisia nimiä. Eihän nimet ole valetta, vaikka olis nimiä sarjakuvahahmoille kuten Aku Ankka tai jehova. Ne ei vaan tarkota mitään. Platon marssitti tähän apuun ideat eli yleiskäsitteet, tosi ajatus on oikea sympl okee eidoon, kuvakudos. Ideat toisin kuin me yxilöt on ikuisia. Sielukin on sit yleiskäsite, se on meemi. Tänhän mä kekkasin jo toisaalla. Platon(ism)ista tuli mukaan paljon tämmöstä ihan puppua, josta eri sortin mystikot on sitten ammentaneet kauhakaupalla. Apinat on oikeesti ihan vitun hölmöjä, alkeellisia matelijanaivoja. Varsinkin kun niillä on joku oma lehmä ojassa.
ellauri032.html on line 347: Musta vale ei ole mikään ongelma, ei toi kielen kuvateoria ole mikään teoria, kuviahan sanalliset kuvauxet tosiasiassa on, morfismin mielessä. Kuva jostain on joko osuva tai se valehtelee. Kuvasta tulee vale kun siinä on caption joka sanoo: ceci n´est pas une pipe. Eli tarvitaan toi indexi, jota vastaan kuva tulkitaan, pl us tarvittaessa joku legenda, ellei kuva ole muuten ilmeinen. Plus moodi, josta näkee mihin tarkoituxeen kuvaa käytetään. That´s all.
ellauri032.html on line 436: Tommonen pitkästyttävän arvattava puolihauska oli tää Kleistin turahdus, tietystikin sixi, että siinä tölvittiin varsin vähän mitään pyhempiä normeja. Hyvixet oli hyvixiä ja konna konna, vaikka maalaisten käytöstavoissa oli huomautettavaa. Siitä ei kovin hersyviä nauruja vielä saa. Paljon ulkonäköön kohdistuvaa pilkkaa, se näyttää kutkuttavan Aarnea. Turhamainen mies. Mut ehkä just tollanen harmiton Charlie Chapl in huumori on Aarnen tapaista. Tai sit tää vaan sattu löytymään suomexi, kiitos puisevan J. Siljon. Saxassa tää on koululukemistona. Niinku Nummisuutarit, hohhoijakkaa. Mustavalkoista harmitonta pilaa kuin Speden skezit tesvisiossa. Sekin oli aika oikealla.
ellauri032.html on line 558: Finnträskin laskuojan puolisen mutapl otun rannalla toimii nyt
ellauri032.html on line 629: Samuel Beckett oli ranskalaistunut irkku irlantilaistuneesta anglikaanisesta hugenottisuvusta. Syntyi pitkänäperjantaina 13.4.1909, samana vuonna kuin Kaarlo Syväntö ja Heikki Brotherus. Samana päivänä kuin Jöns mutta eri vuonna. Sporttinen kriketinpelaaja toteutti Paul Austerin märän unen olemalla 1st class cricket pl ayer ja nobelisti samassa naamarissa. (Persona on naamari, muistattehan.) Se oli viimeinen modernisti, sen jälkeen oli enää post. Siinä on jotain samaa kuin Camusissa, muttei kuitenkaan. Existentialisti se ei ole ainakaan. Eikä mikään posetiivari. Enemmänkin sellanen "tilanne on toivoton muttei vakava." Hyvä tyyppi siis siinä suhteessa.
ellauri032.html on line 652: Tästä hemmosta oli puhe kirkkohissassa, ja herranhuutilaisuudesta kanssa. Mä en kyllä oppinut erottamaan sitä edes 1400-luvun huussilaisuudesta, puhumattakaan Franz Pieperistä, tiukkaluterilaisesta, joka sattui samaan googlehakuun Husin kaa. Mitenhän se Google oikeen näkee suoraan pieneen sydämmeen? No Zinzendorf ansaizee tässä sijansa sillä, että Goethen äiskä, Frau Rat, oli tähän kreiviin päin kallellaan, pl us sen naisystävä, joka hellästi paranteli Häschel-Hansia tubikohtauxesta.
ellauri032.html on line 747: Le Discipl essä Adrien Sixte oli opettanut oppipojalle Loup-Garoulle: rakkaus, se on sukupuolitunteiden alaisexi joutumista. "Ja sitten jäin miettimään tätä uutta kysymystä: Onko olemassa mitään keinoja rakkautta parantamaan? Oikea menettelytapa ehkä olikin noudattaa Goethen opetusta: vapautuaxeen kärsimyxestä tulee ihmisen ajatuxillaan siihen syventyä. Se on kuin raaputtaisi kutinaa. Tuo suuri nero toteutti käytännössä Spinozan viidennessä kirjassaan esittämää teoriaa, jossa ajatuxena on, että elämämme kaikkien erillisten tapausten takana ovat lait, jotka liittävät ne maailman kaikkeuden suureen elämään kuuluvixi. En se minä ollut, mun täytyi kävellä näin, mussa vaan oli se jokin. Ja Tainekin (joka on tehnyt enemmän kuin kukaan muu Darwinin töiden levittämisexi Ranskaan) loistavasti kirjoitetussa Byron-tutkielmassaan neuvoo samoin, että meidän on ymmärrettävä izeämme, jotta järjen valo synnyttäisi meissä sydämen rauhan." Eli determinismi ja siitä johdettu fatalismi ois niinku pääsylippu ataraxiaan. (No tänhän mä osoitin pupuxi jo mun filosofian sivulavissa peliteorian avulla.) Toisaalla Goethe neuvoi nulikkaa joka kysyi miten ruveta neroxi: "en ole ikinä tehnyt mitään mistä en tykännyt." Kaikista kermaperseistä ei tule neroja, mutta monista neroista kermaperseitä.
ellauri033.html on line 18: VIVE LA DISCIPLINE play:none">Ilkikuria
ellauri033.html on line 20: ple.jpeg" width="100%" />
ellauri033.html on line 59: Ardeche on kaakossa Loiren latvoilla. Ihan landea. Vanhoina Bourgetit promeneeraa mökkirannalla Marseillen lähellä. Aatelisämmät valittaa et Mme Bourget mahtailee kuin joku amazoni. Paul kantaa happamen näköisenä sylikoiraa. Minnie veti lopuxi pitemmän korren. Henry James mökkivieraana sytytti vahingossa verhot palamaan. Tupakoi kai sisällä. Minnie ranskansi sen suojatin Edith Whartonin kirjan Edithin kaa yhdessä. Käännös oli "pl utôt grossière".
ellauri033.html on line 61: Bourgetia työnnettiin Nobelin palkinnolle kokonaista 5x, ei napannut. Le Discipl e oli Gladstonen mielikirja, sen jota Rullell pienenä niin pelkäsi.Sekin todistanee jotakin.
ellauri033.html on line 82: Cette section est vide, insuffisamment détaillée ou incompl ète. Votre aide est la bienvenue ! Comment faire ?
ellauri033.html on line 98: incapable d´aucune discipl ine, il arriva deux choses bien
ellauri033.html on line 105: un discipl e de Leconte de Lisle et de Banville. Il subit l´influence des
ellauri033.html on line 120: d´autant pl us inattendu en -tout cas qu´il prenait le contrepied de
ellauri033.html on line 123: virtuosité brillante et s-èche où s´étaient compl us les Parnassiens,
ellauri033.html on line 125: et, pour ainsi dire, inachevée, mais aussi pl us soupl e, pl us musicale,
ellauri033.html on line 126: pl us apte à traduire le rêve et le, mystère dont est faite l´âme môme.
ellauri033.html on line 129: Parmi les « jeunes » qui suivaient Verlaine, la pl upart ne
ellauri033.html on line 134: discipl es. Lorsqu´on lui demandait quelle était sa doctrine: « Je n´en
ellauri033.html on line 143: pl upart de celles qui se laissent comprendre trouvent le moyen d´être à
ellauri033.html on line 144: là fois pl ates et entortillées. Mais il y en a aussi quelques-unes de
ellauri033.html on line 151:
Ce que la débauche a de pl us abject et de pl us dépravé n´altéra pas chez
ellauri033.html on line 152: lui je ne sais quel fond de simpl esse. Ses poésies religieuses, par
ellauri033.html on line 153: exempl e, ont un accent de dévotion naïve qui les met à part. Il ne
ellauri033.html on line 156: dirai pas les pl us religieux, mais les pl us véritablement mystiques
ellauri033.html on line 185:
— suffirait d´elle-même pour leur assurer une pl ace fort enviable. Les
ellauri033.html on line 187: pl us ou moins lointains. Mais, hàtons-nous de le dire, la vérité (les
ellauri033.html on line 195: d´avoir inventé et baptisé les documents humains ». Jamais la littérature n´avait accordé tant d´importance au tissu d´une " robe ou à la couleur d´une tapisserie. Bagatelles et colifichets, voilà le pl us clair de leurs documents. Ils
ellauri033.html on line 200: aujourd´hui l´intérêt d´un livre que par ce qui, demain, n´aura pl us
ellauri033.html on line 205: d´en retracer la changeante figure qu´il n´existe déjà pl us. Ils n´ont
ellauri033.html on line 209: que ce que la nature et la vie ont de pl us fugace. La vérité qu´ils
ellauri033.html on line 219: époque, ou pl utôt leur propre maladie. La vérité qu´ils peignent est à
ellauri033.html on line 221:
Ce qu´il y a de pl us vrai dans toute leur œuvre, c´est ce qui relève de
ellauri033.html on line 222: la photographie et de la sténographie. Par exempl e, certaines pages du
ellauri033.html on line 224: pl aindre. Ne les accusons pas de malignité. Il leur arrivait parfois de
ellauri033.html on line 228: d´irrégulier et de discontinu. Il leur manque le sens de la discipl ine
ellauri033.html on line 231: ont un secrétaire à pl usieurs tiroirs, garnis de fiches ; et leurs
ellauri033.html on line 236: l´instable équilibré. Tantôt surchargée et tantôt elliptique, elle manque toujours la juste pl énitude.
ellauri033.html on line 238: Goncourt supprime le pl us possible ce qui est purement logique, redouble
ellauri033.html on line 239: et multipl ie ce qui excite les nerfs. Elle fourrage à tort et à travers
ellauri033.html on line 242: bariole d´épithètes chatoyantes. Impatiente de rendre les pl us subtils
ellauri033.html on line 261: Avec un bon estomac, M. Huysmans eût été le pl us exempl aire des
ellauri033.html on line 270: Esseintes la contrecarre avec une appl ication maniaque. Il prend tout à
ellauri033.html on line 281: diable, c´est la moitié de la religion ; il ne reste pl us que de croire
ellauri033.html on line 321: dans les turpitudes, l´ange n´en est que pl us libre pour se pâmer dans
ellauri033.html on line 346: Onder zijn "katholieke" romans: L´Oblat, gebaseerd op zijn eigen toetreding als oblaat van de benedictijnen, en later Les foules de Lourdes (De menigten van Lourdes) over Maria en de wonderen in Lourdes, waar Huysmans indirect afrekent met Émile Zola en diens boek Lourdes (1894). Daarnaast herschreef hij in tijdschriftartikelen het leven van Lidwina van Schiedam. Dit leidde tot een heropl eving van de verering van deze heilige. Als dank hiervoor heeft het Schiedamse gemeentebestuur een straat naar hem genoemd. Huysmans stierf als volledig ingetreden kloosterling in de pij van een benedictijner broeder aan de gevolgen van long- en botkanker, veroorzaakt door zijn jarenlange kettingroken.
ellauri033.html on line 353: compl aisance. Beaucoup de braves jeunes gens qui avaient mal digéré leur
ellauri033.html on line 358: ravages sans effroi, Les âmes qu´il avait rendues malades, il appl iqua
ellauri033.html on line 359: tout son zèle à les guérir. Simpl e était la panacée : deux drachmes de
ellauri033.html on line 365: la spl endeur de la foi profonde ». Deux livres sont pour lui d es liv
ellauri033.html on line 370: sensualité. Les égarements qu´il réprouve avec le pl us d´indignation, il
ellauri033.html on line 383: il met telle préface dans laquelle l´exempl e de Bonaparte lui sert à
ellauri033.html on line 384: prouver que l´analyse est une « multipl icatrice d´énergie morale ».
ellauri033.html on line 394: respire « une spl endide rose jaune ». Devant ce spectacle, qui fait
ellauri033.html on line 414: Voi kysyä oliko luonto tarkoittanut Hra Bourgetin kirjoittamaan mondeeneja romaaneja. Se tahtoi olla muodikas kirjailija, ja sitähän se oli. Mutta samalla kun onnittelee sitä sen innosta täyttää tämä tehtävä, voi katua ettei se ottanut izelleen sopivampaa aihetta. Hra Bourgetin valizemassa genressä sen ominaispiirteet kääntyvät vioixi. Sen kaunein kirja (kai tää Discipl e?) on ankara ja vahva etydi, jossa ei ole mitään mondeenia. Kun B. maalaa mondeenia eleganssia, sen vakavuus kuulostaa nulikkamaiselta, ja kun se pohdiskelee sentimentaalisia typeryyksiä, sen metafysiikka kuulostaa pedantilta. Sillä ei ole mitään niitä lahjoja joita hommaan tarvittais. Se on tunnollinen ja raskas, se ei osaa leikkiä. Siltä puuttuu huolettomuutta, taitoa ja suloa. Se minkä muut antavat hienoisesti ymmärtää, se sanoo pitkän kaavan mukaan yxitoikkoisen monisanaisesti. Missä muut liu´uttelevat, se tunkee päälle ja tolkuttaa. Pakinointi ja ironia on sille tuntematonta. Se on tarkka havainnoija, kexeliäs moralisti, mutta siltä puuttuu totaalisesti henkevyys. Vaikka lukee kaikki ne 15-20 romaania mitä se on kyhännyt, ei löydä mitään vizikkäämpää kuin Francoisen pölinä Mensongesissa, tai Opetuslapsessa pappa Carbonnetin turina: yx sanoo kukkelikuu incogniton sijasta, toinen sanoo 4-12 välillä pro catimini. Hra Bourget kerää huolellisesti tämmöisiä hulvattomuuxia; Bouvard ja Pecuchet teki sen paremmin.
ellauri033.html on line 422: No se alotti kriitikkona, eikä pääse täpl istään. Tyyppien teot on vaan veruke aloittaa viisasteleva pohdinta. (Kukas tästä tulee mieleen? No Esa Sariola!) Hienoa zygologiaa epäilemättä; mutta ois kiva kun toi zygologia ei olis pelkkiä alaviitteitä, joista se pitää enemmän huolta kuin henkilöistänsä, jotka sais elää elämäänsä ilman selityxiä. Hra Bourgetin henkilöt on suoraan sanoen vaan automaatteja. Välillä ne tekee jotain eleitä; heti kun ne liikauttavat edes eväänsä, kirjailija hyökkää väliin ja pitää esitelmän mekaniikasta, joka ei pääty ennenkuin se on osoittanut ihan pikkutarkasti miten kellokoneiston rattaat liikahtivat. Sellasta marginaalihuomautusten zygologiaa. Selitys tarjoillaan eri lautasella. Se tekee siitä muistiinpanoja, niin monisanaisia että ne peittävät koko textin ja tukauduttavat romaanin. Valtaosa sen kirjoista on karkeita luurankoja, jonka jokaiseen koukkuun on kiinnitetty anatominen kyltti. Sen huomas kun Une Idyllestä tehtiin teaterikappale. Näyttämöllä selittäjä piti hiljentää. Vaan banaali raaka melodraama jäi jälelle.
ellauri033.html on line 428: Pahimmassa tapauxessa tyypit vois olla ihan erilaisia eri luvuissa. No ei Hra Bourget ihan niin pitkälle mene, vaikka pitääkin kovaa melua ponin minän moneudesta. Useimmiten löytyy vaan kaxi minäehdokasta, esim. Robert Greslou, Loup-Garou ihmissusi, ompasusi joka löytää sisästään kaxi eri oliota, yxi selkeä älykäs rehellinen, kova henkisen työn tekijä, ja toinen pimeä, julma, impulsiivinen. Tai toi Rva de Tillieres, jolla on 2 heilaa, Poyanne ja Casai, jotka tyydyttää sen kahta eri jotain (en sentään sano aukkoa). Vaan Rva Moraine kirjassa Mensonges sisältää kolme persoonallisuutta. Siinä on yx joka tykkää luxuxesta, toinen joka tykkää lemmestä, ja kolmas joka haluu huomiota. Odottakaas! Kun Larcher päättelee: se on aika moni poni, abbe Taconnet vastaa doucement kuin Pirkko: Kompl isoituko? ... tiedän, te käytätte nitä sanoja välttääxenne yxinkertaisempia. Se on vaan onneton joka on tunteittensa vallassa. Jos appi on oikeassa, mitä jää Hra Bourgetin zygologisista pölinöistä? Oikeassahan appi on, Suzanne on yxinkertainen elukka. Se mistä Hra Bourget tekee ison numeron koko kirjan pituudelta, voidaan tiivistää tähän: siinä kisailee sielu ja ruumis, enkeli ja nauta. Eikä siinä mitään, mut pitääx siitä tehdä tollasta zygologista sanasalaattia.
ellauri033.html on line 447: L’auteur des Chansons joyeuses était alors amateur de vins et très libre sur le pl an des mœurs. Il faut signaler une amitié particulière peu connue qui avait uni Maurice Bouchor et Paul Bourget. Ce dernier écrivait à Bouchor quand il avait 15 ans des lettres enflammées auxquelles l’adolescent n’était pas inseänsible. Bourget à cette époque était son « précepteur ». Il faut savoir que Paul Bourget est présent dans l’Album zutique et qu’il fréquentait le groupe des Vivants auquel on l’associe à tort. Il semble que Bouchor n’ait pas craint dans sa première jeunesse de passer pour un homosexuel, peut-être par provocation.
ellauri033.html on line 451: Vive La Discipl ine
ellauri033.html on line 454: Le Discipl e on Pollen magnum opus. Sen suomensi joku Valtonen (ei hilja eikä mato) 1941 nimellä Opetuslapsi. Sillä oli silloin sosiaalinen tilaus. 21v le Discipl en ensijulkaisun 1888 jälkeen eli v 1909 T Wyzeva (häh nainenko? Älä unta nää, se on Theodore Wyszewski, puolan emigrantti, kääntäjä ja taidekriitikko, symbolistien nokkamies) esittelee Bourgetin vanhoile lukijoille ja mahdollisille uusille. No nuoret varmaan lueskeli jo modernisteja. Tätä Wyzevskiä oli silloin jo 20v sitten hämmästyttäny kirjan opettavaisuus (ei jää epäselväxi ketkä on hyvixiä ketkä pahixia ja kuinka niille käy) niin paljon ettei se eka lukemasta muuta muistakaan.
ellauri033.html on line 458: Mut ennen Discipl eä oli mautonta moralisoida näiden sankareiden toimia. Tähän tulee nyt muutos! alkaa ryhtiliike, paluu entiseen katoliseen kuriin. Loppu se nietscheily, Balzacin culte de moi ym rypeminen synnissä. Vastavastavastauskonpuhdistus saa Borgetista lojaalin Lojolan. (Toynbee hoi! Ootko kuulolla? Taas alkaa kierros alusta. Vrt Sariola, joka kääntyi jumalattoman stalinismin kannalta sosiaalidarwinismin puujumalaan.)
ellauri033.html on line 479: Jos ne ei kerro omia tarinoitaan, kirjailijat kexii juonia uutisista tai vanhemmasta viihteestä, esim myyteistä. Discipl en taustalla oli joku affaire Chambige, ilmeisesti jonkun Paulin kaverin tunaroima Klasu ja Ebba tapaus, jossa Klasu muka ampuu vahingossa oman pään ohi ensin nitistettyään menestyxekkäästi Ebban. Tästä nuoriso oppii ampumaan huonosti, tuumii Bourget ja päättää kirjoittaa siitä opettavaisen romaanin. Sekaan voi laittaa paljon monarkismia ja mies-ja ääniperiaatteen pelkoa, puhumattakaan nais-ja ääniperiaattesta. Plus muuta naisten halvexuntaa ja niistä viisastelua. Proustin hyvä puoli sentään on et se on kiinnostunut vaan ja yxinomaan persereijistä.
ellauri033.html on line 500: Ah! urhea keskiluokka! se huoahtaa. Huoh. Siitä on nuosnut uutteria upseereja, däppäriä dipl omaatteja, eteviä professoreja (oyez! oyez!), ehjiä artisteja! Mut sit on näitä kelvottomia poliitikkoja, jotka ajaa mies- ja ääniperiaatetta ja päästävät keskinkertaisuuxia meidän johtopaikoille. Ei enemmistö voi päättää, enemmistöhän on laahusta, totaalisia idiootteja. Mehän keskiluokka ollaan täällä parhaimmistoa. Ei me siis olla turhia, vaikka sota hävittiin. Mut me haudotaan revanshia! Sakuille pannaan vielä päihin, odottakaapas vaan. (No on sitä saanut odottaa. Ranskixet odotti kaxi maailmansotaa tumput suorina et muut hoiteli sakut niiden puolesta.)
ellauri033.html on line 528: Jos osaa kunnolla vetää naruista ja soveltaa dramaattista ironiaa maailman menoon, niin ei tarvi enää hölmöiltä kysyä mielipidettä. Google ja muut suoramainonnan pl us somen parissa työskentelevät tekee sitä jo aika hyvällä menestyxellä. Isoista joukoista voi aika hyvin ennustaa mikä menee kaupaxi, niinkuin käsidesi, aseet, hengityssuojaimet ja vessapaperi nyt lopun aikoina.
ellauri033.html on line 532: Sixte on tästä selvillä, Polle ei. Polle koittaa väkisin tehdä pilaa Anterosta. Proffa kazoo vanhaa villisikaa eläintarhassa ja tuumii et ihmiset tuntee izeään ja ymmärtää motiivejaan yhtä vähän ellei vähemmän kuin kruik kruik. Mut se on ihan totta. Sixte tässä vähän ennakoi Freudia (multipl icité de moi oli 19. vuosisadan meemejä). Yliminä ja se taistelee vallasta kuin Akun pienet kuiskuttelijat. Niinniin, ei Freud sitä kexinyt ihan tyhjästä. Sellainen sisäinen kuiskutus on kaikille tuttua, se on kaikissa uskonnoissa mukana: hyviä ja pahoja henkiä. Skizot kuulevat sen ihan ääneen.
ellauri033.html on line 577:
Loup-Garou Bourget Le Discipl e
ellauri033.html on line 617: Passow studerade i Leipzig under Gottfried Hermann, kallades 1807 av Goethe till Weimars gymnasium som överlärare i grekiska, åtog sig 1810 uppdraget att leda samt omorganisera läroverket Conradinum nära Danzig och blev 1815 professor i klassisk fornkunskap vid universitetet i Breslau. Passow vann mycket anseende både genom sin lärarverksamhet och sina skrifter. Han är mest känd genom Handwörterbuch der griechischen Sprache (1819-24, 5:e uppl agan 1841-1857, utgiven av Valentin Rost och Johann Friedrich Palm; "Grekiskt och svenskt lexikon", 2 band, 1841, översättning av Wilhelm Gumælius).
ellauri033.html on line 646: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/ee/Jean-L%C3%A9on_G%C3%A9r%C3%B4me%2C_Pygmalion_and_Galatea%2C_ca._1890.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri033.html on line 647: pload/posts/Pygmalion%20and%20Galatea%20(1).jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri033.html on line 667: Pollen argumentaatio menee perseelleen tässä kohtaa: on oletettava, että ihminen on syy, ja vapaa syy, jotta se on pantavissa edesvastuuseen. No ei. Ihmineen on peliteorialla ennustettava pikku veturi, joka yleensä kääntyy oikeaan kääntämällä vaihdevipua ja antamalla kaasua tai jarrua, ei tarvi nostaa savupiipusta eikä käyttää neuroleptejä. Koska se on suhteellisen kompl isoitu laite, tää on helpompaakin kuin purkaa se ja eziä perimmäistä syytä sisältä tai ratapihasta. Ne syyt voi olla liian kompl isoituja jotta niitä voisi muuttaa yhtä helposti. (Ja niihin voisi liittyä kiusallisia huomioita raiteista, esim termiittiyhteiskunnan valtarakenteista.) Turpiin vaan ja onnea, se on raakaa peliä mut se toimii kuin junan vessa.
ellauri033.html on line 685: Filosofien foaf-netissä se on melko iso hämähäkki, se on saanu ja antanu vaikutteita joka puolella. (Täähän on kuin coronan tartuntaverkkoja, meemien leviämistä!) Saamapuolella pl ussaa on Avicenna, Averroes, Aristoteles, Demokritos, Lucretius, Epikuros, Niccolo Machiavelli, Thomas Hobbes, Giordano Bruno. Miinusta Descartes, stoalaiset.
ellauri033.html on line 689: (pl ussaa) Marx, Davidson, G. Eliot, Herder, Leibniz, Russell, Wittgenstein, Freud, Vygotsky.
ellauri033.html on line 865: Des pl us beaux de nos jours !
ellauri033.html on line 867: Assez de malheureux ici-bas vous impl orent,
ellauri033.html on line 874: Je dis à cette nuit : Sois pl us lente ; et l´aurore
ellauri033.html on line 890: Ne nous les rendra pl us !
ellauri033.html on line 1026: Grâce à des vents pl us doux, pouvait surgir au port ? Sulompien tuulten armosta pääsis satamaan?
ellauri033.html on line 1027: Si des soleils pl us beaux se levaient sur ma tête ? Jos kauniimmat auringot nousis päähäni?
ellauri033.html on line 1028: Si les pl eurs d’une amante, attendrissant le sort, Jos jonkun rakkaan itku pehmentäis mun osan,
ellauri033.html on line 1055: Jeunesse, amour, pl aisir,. fugitive beauté ! Nuoruus, lempi, pano, katoova nättiys!
ellauri033.html on line 1060: Brillante de beauté, s’enivrant de pl aisir ! Nättiyden loistoa, panon humalaa!
ellauri033.html on line 1073: Emile Laure oli II maailmansodan armeijankenraali Vauclusesta, Vichy-luopio, mitäs se puuhaa Lamartinen runossa? Sori my bad, puhe on jostain toisesta Lauresta. No Vauclusessa on myös ravintola Petrarque et Laure, josta jenkkivieraat sanovat: Good food but lousy service. Koska Vauclusessa on Mont Ventoux, jolle Petrarca kipusi jollain wanderungilla: For pl easure alone he climbed Mont Ventoux, which rises to more than six thousand feet, beyond Vaucluse. It was no great feat, of course; but he was the first recorded Alpinist of modern times, the first to climb a mountain merely for the delight of looking from its top. (Or almost the first; for in a high pasture he met an old shepherd, who said that fifty years before he had attained the summit, and had got nothing from it save toil and repentance and torn clothing.) Petrarch was dazed and stirred by the view of the Alps, the mountains around Lyons, the Rhone, the Bay of Marseilles. He took Augustine´s Confessions from his pocket and reflected that his climb was merely an allegory of aspiration toward a better life. Vanha paimen oli tyytyväinen kun joku oli vielä tyhmempi kuin se, niinkuin Roope ezimässä nelikulmaisia munia.
ellauri033.html on line 1084: ja mietin Paul Bourgetin Le Discipl en loppupelejä, niin tuumasin:
ellauri033.html on line 1104: Auguste de Villiers de L´Isle-Adam , dit le comte, puis (à partir de 1846) le marquis de Villiers de L´Isle-Adam, est un écrivain français d´origine bretonne, né à Saint-Brieuc, le 7 novembre 1838 et mort à Paris le 18 août 1889. Appelé Mathias par sa famille, simpl ement Villiers par ses amis, il utilisait le prénom d´Auguste sur la couverture de certains de ses livres.
ellauri033.html on line 1108: Atteint d´un cancer des voies digestives lors de l´hiver 1888-1889, Villiers ne peut pl us travailler, et Mallarmé doit ouvrir une « cotisation amicale » parmi ses amis pour subvenir à ses besoins et à ceux de sa famille. Le 12 juillet 1889, il est transféré à la clinique des Frères Saint-Jean-de-Dieu, rue Oudinot, à Paris. Se sentant à l´article de la mort, il rédige, le 12 août, un testament où il reconnaît son fils Victor et épouse in extremis Marie Dantine, le 14 août, afin de légitimer son fils. À noter que, juste avant de mourir, il aurait eu ces derniers mots passés à la postérité : « Eh bien, je m´en souviendrai de cette pl anète ! »
ellauri033.html on line 1111: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/97/Carnavalet_-_Auguste_Villiers_de_l%27Isle-Adam_05.jpg/220px-Carnavalet_-_Auguste_Villiers_de_l%27Isle-Adam_05.jpg" style="margin-left:5em;-moz-transform: rotate(90deg);" />
ellauri033.html on line 1112: La Gloire compl ètement deshabillée tirant Auguste de Villiers de l´Isle Adam de son cravate éternel - Musée Carnavalet
ellauri033.html on line 1135: Nommé, le 11 janvier 1862, professeur d´hébreu au Collège de France où il succède à Étienne Quatremère, il est suspendu quatre jours après sa leçon inaugurale pour injure à la foi chrétienne et rempl acé dans sa chaire d´hébreu le 11 juin 1864 en raison de sa Vie de Jésus, ouvrage sur Jésus de Nazareth jugé sacrilège. L´érudit Salomon Munk lui succède à cette chaire.
ellauri034.html on line 25: kukin kuolee izexeen play:none">Yxinpuhelua
ellauri034.html on line 114: Parhaita osotuxia elämän tarkoituxettomuudesta on virusten leviäminen. Ne leviää kuin elanto, vaikkei ne siitä mitenkään edes ilostu, ihan vaan sokkona toimii niissä sama mekanismi kuin solun sisässä. RNA dupl ikoituu, kert se ei voi muuta tehdä kuin dupl ikoitua. Termiittiapinat taistelee virusta vastaan hampaat irvessä, virus ei edes irvistä vaan lisääntyy kuin kone. Vaan kuinkas sitten käy kun kexitään lisääntyvä kone. Näiden nykyisten lisäxi.
ellauri034.html on line 269: In the opinion of religious peopl e, however, the private comfort that religion brings more than compensates for the evil done in its name.
ellauri034.html on line 292: Se että nykyporukat uhoo näistä 2 viime maailmansodasta on teleskooppivaikutusta. Lähellä asiat näyttää isommilta, kuten se New Yorkerin kansi jossa NY ja itärannikko melkein täytti koko horisontin. Maailmansotia on ollut vaikka kuinka monta, maailma vaan oli pienempi ja aseet tylsempiä. Ruumiitakin tulee enemmän teollisella prosessilla, tuhon tuottavuus on kasvanut. Tää tuli mieleen 7v sodasta, joka kuulostaa lyhkäseltä, mut oli pitempi kuin kumpikaan maailmansota, ja globaalinen siirtomaasota sekin. Länsihyeenat ja itäsakaalit eri notmiiden haaskalla. Siitä ei Suomessa juuri kuule kun Suomi ei ollut vielä järin mukana klopaalissa menossa 1756-1763. Ei pitäneet sen ajan Timo Soinit vielä pl okia Prysselistä käsin. Ruozin sähläys 7-vuotisessa sodassa oli Pommerin sota, mistä suomalaiset ei kostuneet muuta kuin pommes frites. Tutustuttiin pitkäaikaiseen ystäväämme maapäärynään. Drakassa pojat nauro itäuusmaalaiselle maajussille joka sano peerun eikä potatis. Peruna on hävinnyt täällä pizzalle, ja silli kepapille. Maailman suurin perunanviljelijä on Kiina.
ellauri034.html on line 294: August von Kotzebue tapettiin keppijumppanujakassa 1819. Alaskassa on Kotzebuen salmi ja kaupunki, Otto von Kotzebuen mukaan nimetty. Räävelissä 1787 syntynyt Otto, Akun poika, kartoitti Alaskaa ryssille. Ryssä möi sen sitten jenkeille 1867. 100v myöhemmin meidän perhe kazoi Suomi 50 ilotulitusta tähtitorninmäeltä. Sitä 50v uudempi on kuva missä Saarinen ja kuningatar hymyilevät linnan juhlissa Suomi 100-kyltin kyljessä.. Alexander Kotzebue maalasi hulluna vuotena 1948 taulun 7-vuotisen sodan Kunersdorfin taistelusta kaxi vuosisataa ennen kuin mä aloitin Tehtaankadun kansakoulun 1959. Oli varmaan samaa huonetta ja sukua. Kunersdorfissa ryssä ja itävalta löivät Friedrich der Grossen armeijan, suuret preussilaiset pienixi muruixi. Saxan suurvaltatoiveet tyssäsivät taas. Verdammt! Retu jäi kotiin hoitamaan kihtiä kaalinlehtikääryleillä Emanuel Bachin säestäessä cembalolla. Kuten kertoilee mamuprofessori Crister Pursiainen populäärishistoriallisessa pl äjäyxessä hovitsempalisti ja hänen kuninkaansa 2017, kirjan lainasi Riku Seijalle joka ei myöskään jaxa sitä lukea. Rikuilla oli Somervillessä pörhöhäntäinen kissanpoika nimeltä Klobürste . Se oxenteli karvapalloja. Zum kotzen.
ellauri034.html on line 320: Haraldisk pl anering
ellauri034.html on line 350: utpl ånade storkapital (ursäkta, spar-)
ellauri034.html on line 372: "Försvinner skatteunderlaget ska vi rika pl ocka fram motorsågarna och möblera om inom den kraschande välfärden, som var en satans dålig idé att börja med. Om bara förra regeringen hade haft tid at genomföra den skapande förödelse i hälsovården den pl anerade, skulle nu den här pandemin vara så mycket lönsammare. Då ekonomin trillar ner till källarnivåer tar de svagaste smällen, det skall vi välmående nog se till."
ellauri034.html on line 509: ihmiskunnalle, kun kaikki menee ympäri, lasketaan pl ussit ja miinusit.
ellauri034.html on line 547: Chinua Achebe was a Nigerian novelist, poet, and critic who is regarded as the dominant figure of modern African literature. His first novel and magnum opus, Things Fall Apart, occupies a pivotal pl ace in African literature and remains the most widely studied, translated and read African novel. If Conrad or his novel is racist, it is only in a weak sense, since Heart of Darkness acknowledges racial distinctions "but does not suggest an essential superiority" of any group.
ellauri035.html on line 19: Kaunapahkasika play:none">Exotiikkaa
ellauri035.html on line 45: Fanifiktio on hyvä harjoite. On mulla aika lailla sellaistakin, pl agiaattia. Mut en ole varonut liikaa omaelämäkerrallisuutta, pelannut videopelejä, ja hinzusti oon kazonut myös tv-sarjoja. Matkustaakin pitäisi, mut se on kiellettyä.
ellauri035.html on line 141: For love's great sleepl essness wandering all night,
ellauri035.html on line 154: I see the heavy startled hair of this reed-flute pl ayer
ellauri035.html on line 220: The pl eased intimacy of rough love
ellauri035.html on line 292: I have seen her enter the templ e meekly and there seem
ellauri035.html on line 314: Caught yellow moonlight. The purpl e flame of fire
ellauri035.html on line 335: The pl eased snarling of the tumult of dogs
ellauri035.html on line 377: The year that simpl e and unexalted ran till now
ellauri035.html on line 403: Their fingers, being purpl e-stained, show
ellauri035.html on line 503: In swarms before the pl easure of my mind;
ellauri035.html on line 961: > Antti Arppe väitteli 4 ajattelua merkizevästä sanasta. Yxi oli pohtia. Se osotti tilastollisesti et pohtiminen on seurallista, asioiden puimista yhessä ja samassa riihessä. Hallitus päättää hallitus kommentoi. Pohtivat budjettia riihessä. Kuuluu karmea jyske varstojen. Tulee iso jytky. Riippumahat hyllyvät. Homoministeri hyllyttää dipl omaatteja.
ellauri035.html on line 1019: Noam Chomsky is critical of Žižek, saying that he is guilty of "using fancy terms like polysyllables and pretending you have a theory when you have no theory whatsoever", and also that Žižek’s theories never go "beyond the level of something you can expl ain in five minutes to a twelve-year-old".
ellauri035.html on line 1021: Zizek pl agioi jopa izeään. Jopa Zizek on siis sitä mieltä, että Zizek kirjotti ennen edes paremmin kuin nyt. Sloveniaxi se olikin helpompaa, ja kilpailua ei paljon ollut sen laitoxessa, Ljubljana institution for psychopaths.
ellauri035.html on line 1043: Rabinow on vähän kuin Samu Butlerin Erewhonin maahanmuuttaja. He is a real erewhon man / sitting in his erewhon land / making all his erewhon pl ans for nobody.
Utopistista paskanjauhantaa Thomas Moren malliin. Sitäkään mä en ole vielä jauhanut. Näitä permutaatioita hyppypapujen asennoista apinoiden päässä piisaa. Oxymoroneita, the more the merrier.
ellauri035.html on line 1048: ploads/2015/05/Slavoj_Zizek_in_Liverpool_21.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri035.html on line 1049: plified.com/wp-content/upl oads/2020/02/THE-RELEVANT-QUEER-Philosopher-Theorist-Judith-Butler-Born-February-24-1956.-www.imageampl ified.com-Image-Ampl ified2.png" height="200px" />
ellauri035.html on line 1072: Sen puuhastelu taitaa olla osallistuvaa havainnointia akateemisissa apinalaumoissa. Uusia muotoja tarvitaan koulufilosofiaankin, uusia labroja. Mitä sen uusissa labroissa puuhastellaan jää aika hämäräx. Käsitetyötä, ei siis käsityötä, eikä käsityölehtiä. Meemejä tutkitaan uusilla ovelilla tavoilla, niin ainakin rahoittajille luvataan. Eihän ne mitään ymmärrä kuitenkaan. Se nyysii Foucaultilta, toiselta rättikauppiaalta, History of the Present, ja tekee siitä Anthropology of the Contemporary. Vähemmän iskevä, mun miälestä. Sehän pl agioi kuin Zizek, paizi ei izeään, vaan Foucaultia. Kunnon lipilaaristi se haluu osottaa et nykyisyys on rahanheittoa, ja sixi tulevaisuuskin voi olla mitä tahansa. Kovasti ähkäisten se äkistää ulos tän neronleimauxen: contemporary “is a moving ratio of modernity, moving through the recent past and near future in a (non-linear) space.
Eli vähän vanhaa, vähän uutta, vähän lainattua, vähän sinistä. Bravo Polle! Sä teit sen! Mikä pukerrus! Tais peräpukamat olla kovilla!
ellauri035.html on line 1121: B sai vesileipätuomion kun rikkoi jesuiitan 4 pyhää pl upausta, ptottelevaisuus, pköyhyys, psiveys, nro 4 on erityinen jesuiitoille eli pnöyryys paapalle. Jesuiittakenraali Loyola oli vanha upseeri, jesuiitat paavin teloituskomppania. Francis Xavier oli jesuiittakenraali, Don Jaimen paras kaveri oli tykkikenraali Aurelio Xavier. Sillä oli taivaansininen asetakki, Francisilla musta. Jesuiittaunivormussa ei ollut nappeja eikä vetoketjua vaan kuin kylpytakin vyö, siitä saa nopeammin aseen ulos. El Zorrokin oli hirmunopee vetämään, tuli nopeemmin kuin varjonsa.
ellauri035.html on line 1142: Pesimismo relativo cristiano no es el mismo materialista y absoluto de hombres como Schopenhauer y Nietzsche. Levantando algo el pl ano de observación, diré que tiene el pesimismo y el optimismo del cristianismo: pesimismo en la vida, optimismo en el fin de la vida.
ellauri035.html on line 1148: Cultivar el intelecto, educar y templ ar la voluntad, regir la conducta con discreción y prudencia en el trato social. Su lección es de energía y perseverancia, de discreción y virtud. Tuvo el P. Baltasar una mentalidad robusta y el genio práctico del fundador de su orden, de Ignacio de Loyola. Y así, enseña sin idealismos, ni sentimentalismos, ni metafísicas.
ellauri035.html on line 1154: D a él reglas para triunfar en el mundo. Algunas son egoístas y cautelosas, como el vivir práctico demanda; la mayoría son las propias de la moral prudencia. No se dirige a hombres contempl ativos que viven alejados del ruido del mundo y pueden practicar cómodamente la virtud. Se dirige a criaturas de carne y hueso entregadas a la batalla de la existencia. Mira a la conveniencia, y no al sacrificio. No aspira al imposible de cambiar la naturaleza de cada uno de sus lectores. No es idealista, no es sentimentalista. " Es menester gran tiento con los que se ahogan, para acudir al remedio sin peligro." Nada sublime, pero ¿no es el consejo racional de un buen padre de familia?
ellauri035.html on line 1173: Luonteeltaan se oli koleerinen, biliöösi ja melankoolinen. Sapekas kaikilla mausteilla, pl us sangviininen. Sen esimiehet pani proffan vedelle ja leivälle. Just ennen kuolemaa se sai viimeisen varoituxen, josset ole kunnolla sut pannaan koppiin ilman kynää ja paperia. Ja siihen kuoli hän. Vai kuoli hän siihen? Juu, siihen kuoli hän. Sille se oli pahempaa kuin tamperelaiselle pyöreä huone ilman kulman takana odottavaa mustaa makkaraa. (Kuka hemmetti muuten on Petri Liukkonen?)
ellauri035.html on line 1223: Hänen kerrotaan hukuttautuneen tuohon jokeen. Hänen ruumiinsa etsimisestä on saanut alkunsa ns. lohikäärmeveneiden juhla, joka nykyisin on Kiinan kansallinen juhlapäivä. Päivää vietetään kuukalenterin viidennen kuun viidentenä päivänä. Meidän kalenterimme mukaan se on yleensä kesäkuussa. Tuolloin järjestetään lohikäärmevenekilpa-ajot ja syödään erityistä pyramidinmotoista zongzi-riisikakkua. Lohikäärmeveneet kuvastavat yritystä pelastaa runoilija ja noiden kakkujen avulla yritetään saada kaloja jättämään runoilijan ruumis rauhaan. (lähde? pl oki Perttu Eemeli Kouvolasta)
ellauri036.html on line 18: TÄNÄÄN EI MIKÄÄN VOI MENNÄ PIELEEN play:none">Mussutusta
ellauri036.html on line 117: Piersonska antaa lähtöpassit vielä kirjallisena ja matkustaa ize N:n kaupunkiin. Ahnas Musse ei pysty tottelemaan vaan reissaa perästä. Ei tästä näytä tulevan lasta eikä paskaakaan. Palataan lähtöruutuun, Musse jää roikkumaan ja soittelemaan lesken lehdellä, mut ei se tunnu enää samalta, kun katti on jo päässyt säkistä. Kummallista keekoilua seuraa, tässä on nyt koira haudattuna. Läski pappi sekaantuu asioihin hämärällä tavalla. Tässä on nyt jotain "foul pl ay". No ei sittenkään, pian päästään razaille - siis hevosilla vielä - ja tunnelmallisessa mezässä Musse pussaa leskeä ja leski vastaa suudelmaan - rakastaahan se mua! Jehuu!
ellauri036.html on line 125: Pahin vika näiden kuikeloiden elämässä on että niillä on TYYLSÄÄÄ: liikaa vapaa-aikaa, liian vähän "kivaa" tekemistä, ts. mitään kunnollista puuhaa joka tuntuu vaivan arvoiselta. Niiltä puuttuu arkea. Onnex onnex me ei olla noin rikkaita. Nyt kun Musse on nainut leskeä enemmän kuin tarpeexeen se alkaa kiusata sitä flirttailemalla jonkun tyhmän lörppävitun kaa. Vittu että miehet osaa olla paskoja, jopa tollaiset nolot piipunrassit kuten Musse. Nyt on lesken vuoro olla mustasukkainen, tulee riita, sinkoilee lautaset ja kattilat. Tehdään sovinto, mutta laiha. Vitun Musse kohtelee Brigitteä vuoroin petollisena rakastajattarena, vuoroin ostettuna ilotyttönä. Eix siinä ole yhtään normaalia tunnetta? Ei kai. Se on narsisti, ja narsistin täpl istä ei pääse. Se on päässyt pilalle liian nuorena, eikä siihen ole jäänyt enää kunnon rehellistä apinaa, pelkkä pelle vaan. Se ei ole ainoo paska Brigitten elämässä. Brigitten eka poikaystävä oli yhtä kehveli, bylsi Brigitteä häiden aattona ja lähti sitten suit sait vaan livohkaan. Kerrottuaan tämän surullisen tarinan jolleio vertoa, Brigitte pyllistelee kalliolla jossa ne on yöpymässä retkellä (Musse hölmö hukkas tulitikut ja pakin) kyynelehtien, Mussen äitihahmona, Musse on kohta hengessä täysin purjein mukana mela ojossa.
ellauri036.html on line 137: Mut ei, just ennen lähtöä Brigitte alkaa "riutua". Sitähän jengi tuppaa tekemään romanttisissa romaaneissa, riutumaan. Ilmeisesti six et sen porukat N:n kaupungista aikoo excommunikoida sen jos se lähtee pariisilaisrotan matkaan. Kysymys: mixei ne mee vaan naimiaisiin? Mikä estää? Toinen on leski ja toinen naimaton. Onx tässäkin nyt jotain "foul pl ay"? No faktisesti olikin, Ovaltine oli elävän paronin leski, eikä vainajan.
ellauri036.html on line 157: Sekin narsistista. Mut sit peitto valahtaa Pipan tisulta ja Musse löytää taas tarkoituxen elämälle. Tai kuolemalle ehkä, oisko mitään tehdä tupl aseppuku, with our without consent of the consenting party? Löysin pöydältä leipäveizen ja pitelin sitä kädessäni. Size pitää oikeen Hamlet-tyyppisen loppupuheenvuoron, jossa se toteaa mmm.:
ellauri036.html on line 165: ... Herschell väittää, että maapallo kuolee kylmyyteen. Kuka on siis se joka pitää tätä tiivistynyttä höyrypisaraa kädessään ja katselee sen kuivumista niinkuin kalastaja tekee merivedelle saadakseen jyväsen suolaa? Vetovoima, joka pitää koossa maailmankaikkeutta, täyttää sen samalla kertaa, loputtomalla hyödyttömällä kaipuulla: jokainen pl aneetta laahaa mukanaan kurjuutensa, pyöriessään kitisten akselinsa ympäri, ne huutavat toisilleen kukin omalta ääreltään, ja odottavat, lepoa ikävöiden, mikä niistä saa ensimäisenä pysähtyä.
ellauri036.html on line 217: Marchait et respirait dans un peupl e de dieux;
ellauri036.html on line 243: Naquit un siècle d'or, pl us fertile et pl us beau?
ellauri036.html on line 256: Sur l'orgue universel des peupl es prosternés
ellauri036.html on line 263: Dans tes templ es muets amène à pas tremblants;
ellauri036.html on line 267: Quand ton peupl e fidèle, autour des noirs arceaux,
ellauri036.html on line 269: Comme au souffle du nord un peupl e de roseaux.
ellauri036.html on line 273: Les comètes du nôtre ont dépeupl é les deux.
ellauri036.html on line 285: Et de pl eurer, ô Christ! sur cette froide terre
ellauri036.html on line 288: Du pl us pur de ton sang tu l'avais rajeunie;
ellauri036.html on line 292: Nous attendons autant, nous avons pl us perdu.
ellauri036.html on line 293: Plus livide et pl us froid, dans son cercueil immense
ellauri036.html on line 297: Suspendant tout un peupl e à ses haillons divins ?
ellauri036.html on line 301: Où donc vibre dans l'air une voix pl us qu'humaine?
ellauri036.html on line 317: De la pl us vieille en vice et de la pl us féconde,
ellauri036.html on line 318: Je veux dire Paris, — le pl us grand débauché
ellauri036.html on line 337: Il avait de son bien mangé pl us de moitié.
ellauri036.html on line 349: Il suivit la Vertu, qui lui sembla pl us belle 5.
ellauri036.html on line 359: S'y cache à tous les yeux sous une tripl e enceinte;
ellauri036.html on line 361: Y baise en pl ein soleil la prostitution.
ellauri036.html on line 375: Un pl us large mépris des peupl es et des rois.
ellauri036.html on line 385: Qu'il se ferait sauter quand il n'aurait pl us rien.
ellauri036.html on line 390: Elle était bonne au pl us pour un jour de bataille,
ellauri036.html on line 395: Le soleil est de pl omb, les palmiers en silence
ellauri036.html on line 407: Avec leurs chameliers passaient sous les pl atanes,
ellauri036.html on line 416: Qui ne saurait pl ier ni son cou ni son aile,
ellauri036.html on line 421: Non, la neige est pl us pâle, et le marbre est moins blanc.
ellauri036.html on line 424: Un soupir pl us léger que ceux des algues vertes
ellauri036.html on line 442: N'est-ce pas que la nuit la rend encor pl us belle ?
ellauri036.html on line 451: Qui se penche en pl eurant sur ce vieux crucifix;
ellauri036.html on line 472: Les songes de tes nuits sont pl us purs que le jour,
ellauri036.html on line 475: Il est couvert de boue et dégouttant de pl uie;
ellauri036.html on line 523: Un vent d'est aussi pl ein des larmes du printemps,
ellauri036.html on line 557: Trois ans, — les trois pl us beaux de la belle jeunesse, —
ellauri036.html on line 608: Vous ne la pl aignez pas, vous, femmes de ce monde!
ellauri036.html on line 611: Vous ne la pl aignez pas, vous, mères de familles,
ellauri036.html on line 626: Vers son père immortel n'en monte pas pl us vite,
ellauri036.html on line 627: Pour tâcher de l'atteindre et de s'en pl aindre à lui.
ellauri036.html on line 638: À l'ange du pl aisir nous porte dans ses bras!
ellauri036.html on line 646: Le nôtre doit te pl aire, et tes hommes sont nés.
ellauri036.html on line 658: Que pour l'éternité ton soufHe a dépeupl és?
ellauri036.html on line 663: Crois-tu ta mission dignement accompl ie,
ellauri036.html on line 672: Des sanglots inouïs, des pl aintes oppressées,
ellauri036.html on line 678: Où les ont-ils appris, ces mots si pl eins de charmes,
ellauri036.html on line 681: Ô femme! étrange objet de joie et de suppl ice!
ellauri036.html on line 691: Point d'amour! et des pl eurs! et la nuit qui murmure,
ellauri036.html on line 693: Qui pâlit de pl aisir, qui boit la volupté!
ellauri036.html on line 696: Un malheureux de pl us qui maudira le jour...
ellauri036.html on line 703: À ces deux enfants-là qui cherchent le pl aisir
ellauri036.html on line 712: Vous buviez à pl ein cœur, moines mystérieux!
ellauri036.html on line 718: Vois-tu, vieil Arouet? cet homme pl ein de vie,
ellauri036.html on line 728: Si le pl us léger fil le retenait encor,
ellauri036.html on line 730: Sa mort! — Ah! laisse-lui la pl us faible pensée
ellauri036.html on line 732: Au pl us affreux, qu'importe ? Il n'en aura pas peur;
ellauri036.html on line 745: Il ne voulait pl us croire aux choses de la terre.
ellauri036.html on line 749: Son cœur y respirait un air pl ein d'espérance;
ellauri036.html on line 760: Les monts sont nivelés, la pl aine est éclaircie;
ellauri036.html on line 768: L'hypocrisie est morte; on ne croit pl us aux prêtres;
ellauri036.html on line 769: Mais la vertu se meurt, on ne croit pl us à Dieu.
ellauri036.html on line 770: Le noble n'est pl us fier du sang de ses ancêtres;
ellauri036.html on line 772: On ne mutile pl us la pensée et la scène,
ellauri036.html on line 773: On a mis au pl ein vent l'intelligence humaine;
ellauri036.html on line 774: Mais le peupl e voudra des combats de taureau.
ellauri036.html on line 776: triste. On n'est pl us assez fou pour se faire trappiste;
ellauri036.html on line 784: Fendirent en lambeaux le voile aux pl is sanglants.
ellauri036.html on line 786: Murmurait sur la pl ace une ancienne romance.
ellauri036.html on line 818: Qu'importe un jour de pl us à ce vieil univers?
ellauri036.html on line 824: Que chantent tes oiseaux? que pl eure ta rosée?
ellauri036.html on line 838: Où n'avait pas germé la pl us chétive fleur!
ellauri036.html on line 840: Qui vivait en pl ein air, en défiant son sort,
ellauri036.html on line 852: Et sauter dans le ciel dépl oyé devant lui?
ellauri036.html on line 868: Elle peut les pl onger dans ses pl us noirs marais;
ellauri036.html on line 873: A taillé dans les flancs de ses pl us purs granits.
ellauri036.html on line 879: Vos peupl ades sans nombre, au soleil enchaînées,
ellauri036.html on line 908: La pl us faible de vous, quand Dieu vous a créées,
ellauri036.html on line 909: A voulu traverser les pl aines éthérées,
ellauri036.html on line 959: Tout pl ein de tertres verts et de vieux ossements.
ellauri036.html on line 966: «Qu'est-ce que tu fais là ? pourquoi prends-tu ma pl ace ? »
ellauri036.html on line 974: Qu'elle en resta muette et pl us pâle que lui.
ellauri036.html on line 1000: Ce n´était déjà pl us qu'un être inanimé.
ellauri036.html on line 1198: kameleineen kulkivat pl ataanien alla
ellauri036.html on line 1817: Ilman sitä kaikki menee pl örinäx.
ellauri036.html on line 1948: The halftime show at Super Bowl XXXVIII, which was broadcast live on February 1, 2004 from Houston, Texas on the CBS television network, is notable for a moment in which Janet Jackson's breast – adorned with a nippl e shield – was exposed by Justin Timberlake to the viewing public for approximately half a second.
ellauri036.html on line 1950: The incident was ridiculed both within the United States and abroad, with a number of commentators opining that it was a pl anned publicity stunt. Some American commentators viewed it as a sign of decreasing morality in American culture, while others considered the incident harmless and argued that it received undue attention and backlash. The increased regulation of broadcasting raised concerns regarding censorship and free speech in the United States.
ellauri036.html on line 1952: YouTube co-founder Jawed Karim credits the incident with leading to the creation of the video sharing website. The incident also made "Janet Jackson" the most searched person and term of 2004 and 2005. The incident broke the record for "most searched event over one day". The incident became the most watched, recorded and repl ayed television moment in TiVo history and "enticed an estimated 35,000 new [TiVo] subscribers to sign up". The term "wardrobe malfunction" was coined as a result of the incident, and was eventually added to the Merriam-Webster's Collegiate Dictionary.
ellauri036.html on line 1962: In particular, we have had a lot of literature on a few colorful shaming penalties,like sentencing businessmen who urinate in public to scrub the streets with toothbrushes, or sentencing shopl ifters to wear T-shirts announcing their offenses to the world. It is no surprise that criminal law professors enjoy debating these shaming penalties -call them T-shirt and bumper-sticker sanctions.
ellauri036.html on line 1964: Pahempia kuin nää "ylilyönnit" on jenkki"oikeuden" tavalliset käytännöt. Vankilat on nöyryytyslaitoxia, oikeudenkäynnit televisioituja farsseja, pahimmat tapauxet kuskataan Guantanamoon ja kidutetaan siellä, nöyryytetään mumslimeita kostoxi tupl atorneista. Ne nyt jouti mennäkin, rahavallan törkeet tupl afäkkisormet. Sit oli se Abu Ghraib "skandaali", missä apinan lailla irvistelevät jenkkisotilaat näytti peukku ylös merkkiä alastoman mumslimiruumiskasan päällä. Kaikenlaista ihan samanlaista sikailua kuin karja-aidan toisellakin puolella. Ei helvetti, ne on nää apinat ize, ei mikään paha meemi, joka näitä teettää. Just samanlaista meinikiä on jenkkivankiloissa, sanoo lähde. The human animal is capable of behaviors unimagined by our rational actor models, and even by our most resolutely "behavioral" brands of law and economics.
ellauri036.html on line 1982: Vielä yx järkky ero eurooppalaisen ja jenkkikäsityxen välillä ihmisoikeuxista. Meillä ajatellaan et ihmisillä on joku oikeus yxityisyyteen. Jenkeissä ei tää ole yhtään selvää, koska siellä mainostajilla on vähintään yhtä iso kala vedessä ja lehmä ojassa. Semmosia lakeja ei voi tehdä jotka rajottaa yrittämisen vapautta, ja six gog ja magog pl us silverfish saa vapaasti koittaa tiirikoida jokaikisen puhelinta ja tirkistellä verhoista. Jos työläiset ei haluu että niitä valvotaan, niin ainahan ne voi äänestää jaloillaan ja lähtee kilometritehtaalle. Tää on vapaa maa.
ellauri037.html on line 18:
Klassiker fyller sjuttio play:none">Memorabilia
ellauri037.html on line 119: alkaa vuorostaan tuntua yhtä vanhanaikaisilta kuin Chapl in nonarit.
ellauri037.html on line 120: Chapl in kelpas jenkkilän kielivammaisille mamuille ja Aarne Kinnuselle .
ellauri037.html on line 157: Charles Spencer Chapl in (1889-1977), der König der Stummfilmkomödien, ein rührend-komischer kleiner, verwegener Tramp in Klassikern wie (ei jaxa), wurde für seinen Diensten im II. Weltkrieg zum Ritter geschlagen. Seine Mutter Hannah lehrte ihn zu tanzen. Sein Vater war Alkoholiker und verliess die Familie nach Charlies Geburt. Mutti war geisteskrank und Charlie verbrachte seine Kindheit in Anstalten. Er war ein launischer Perfektionist. 1952 verliess Charlie die U.S.A, weil er da als einen Kommunisten gehalten wurde. Er wurde Weltburger in der Schweiz mit seinen Millionen.
ellauri037.html on line 162: 1934 war eine 20-jährige an der Reihe, 1941 eine 22-jährige, die auf dem Rasen vor Charlies Hause schwanger wurde. In der Zwischenzeit war Chapl in Oona begegnet, den 17-jährigen Tochter des berühmten Dramatikers Eugene O´Neill. Sie wurde sein vierte und letzte Ehefrau. Als er starb, hatte Chapl in acht weitere Kinder gezeugt - das letzte, als er über 70 Jahre alt war.
ellauri037.html on line 216: auringon kolmannella pl aneetalla.
ellauri037.html on line 268: Scanning in his mind so many times and pl aces,
ellauri037.html on line 518: Miesten kesken on luonnostaan vaan välinpitämättömyyttä (no mulla kyllä kieltämättä oli jotain pikku erimielisyyxiä eräiden koulufilosofiprofessoriääliöiden kaa, joihin palaan tukijatkeessa), mutta naiset on luonnostaan keskenään sotajalalla. Se kai johtuu siitä et miehillä kilpailu rajoittuu omaan kiltaan, naisilla se ulottuu koko sukupuoleen, koska niillä on vaan yx ammatti, maailman vanhin sellainen. Kadullakin tavatessaan ne kazoo toisiaan kuin Guelfit ja Ghibelliinit. 2 naista tavatessaan 1 kertaa suhtautuvat toisiinsa vaivautuneemmin ja teeskentelevämmin kuin 2 reilua miekkosta. (Tulee mieleen Bernard Shawn , toisen ison setämiehen My Fair Lady. Nää reilu-miekkosjutut on aina vähän homahtavia.) Sen takia naisten keskiset kompl imangit kuulostavat naurettavammilta kuin kahden miehen keskiset (häh? no Schopenhauer oli tosi turhamainen ollaxeen pussikarhun doppelgängeri). Edelleen, vaikka mies puhuu suht ihmismäisesti jopa niille jotka ovat paaaaaaaaljon sitä alempana (vitun nilkkifasisti), on sietämätöntä kazoa miten kopeasti ylhäinen rouva elehtii nokintajärjestyxessä alemmalle (vaikkei edes palvelijalle, missä tapauxessa se olis ihan ymmärrettävää). Siitä voi johtua että naisten kesken on vähemmän nilkkejä kuin meillä, ja voimasuhteet voi muuttua äkkisemmin kuin meillä miehillä. No niin vittu, miehet on vielä enemmän laumaeläimiä, de Waalin simpansseja, tai vielä pahenpaa, cro magnoneja. Miehillä ranki riippuu kaiken maailman prenikoista ja nazoista, naisilla vaan siitä, kenen kaa ne on naimisissa. Six ne on luonnostaan samalla viivalla ja yrittää hikisesti luoda hajurakoa. (Helvatti, mix nää hajuraot kiinnostaa miehiä niin hirveesti. No, tyhmä kysymys.)
ellauri037.html on line 561: Lähdetään siis Danzigista eli Gdanskista, jossa Arttu syntyi 100v ennen Mikko Rothia . Sen iskä Heikki oli saxalais-hollantilainen patriisi ja äiti Johanna monilahjakas salonginpitäjä ja kirjaltaja. Se Schopen lapiosana tulee siis hollannista. Uskonnottomia olivat, vallankumouxellisia rebublikaaneja, kosmopoliitteja ja anglofiilejä. Toisin kuin Sope siis, taas, paitsi sitä ateismia. Kun Gdanskista tuli osa Preussia, lipilaari Heikki muutti perheineen länsimielisempään Hampuriin. Artun pikkusisko Adele oli sitä 8 vuotta nuorempi. Ei siis leikkikaveri, vaan ärsyttävä vanhempien lemmikki kuin Riku. Heikki ja Hanna antoi lapsilleen A:lla alkavat nimet, niinkuin saman pesueen koiranpennuille. Artun koirankin nimi oli Atma. Arttu oli vaihdossa Ranskassa ja styylas siellä ikätoverinsa pojan kanssa, ja soitti sen kanssa huilua. 15v jolppina se lähti Euroopanympärimatkalle vanhempien kaa, business and pl easure. Tää oli Heikin juonia: se halus Artun perhebisnexeen, Arttu halus yliopistoon joka oli iskän mielestä turhuutta. Jos haluut matkalle, niin sit jatkat sen jälkeen kauppakoulussa. Jos haluut verstaalle, niin unohda koko turnee. No se lähti reisulle, mut katu sitä myöhemmin. Wimbledonissa oli tyyyylllsäää jossain anglikaanikoulussa. Sixikin se vihas uskontoa myöhemmin. Heikki rähjäsi Artulle huonoista todistuxista niin kovasti, että Hanna pelkäsi sen menettäneen järkensä. Ehkä menettikin. Heikki hyppäs kanaaliin Hampurissa 1805. Se oli yhtä autisti kuin poikansa, ja yhtä masis. Sope sanoikin et sen luonne on isän peruja. Isän puolella oli enemmänkin hulluja. Äiskä sensijaan oli seuraihminen. Sope ihaili isäänsä kai six kun ei pärjännyt alkuunkaan äidille, ja äiti vaan hemmotteli pikku Adia. No Heikiltä jäi mojova potti, joka jaettin kolmeen osaan. Arttu sijoitti omansa varovasti valtionobligaatioihin ja nettosi sillä 2x enemmän kuin yliopiston professori. Oli varaa sitten vittuilla koulufilosofeille.
ellauri037.html on line 575: Sopelle tuli äkkilähtö Berliinistä 1813 Napsun pelossa kun se epäili joutuvansa varusmiehexi. Se palas Weimariin mutta lähti sieltäkiin kun äiskä eli siellä synnissä jonkun sitä 12v nuoremman gigolon kaa. Piileskeli vähän aikaa Rudoldstadtin kaupunkipahasessa, retkeili Thuringenin mezissä ja söi makkaraa kirjoittaen väikkäriä, Riittävän syyn periaatteen neljästä juuresta. (Eli mix tyhjästä ei voi mitään nyhjästä.) Kun Ranskan armeija lyötiin Leipzigissä, väikkäri tuli sopivasti valmiixi. Sopea vitutti hohottavat sotilaat ja se lähti taas Weimariin. Äiskä (joka oli nähtävästi yhtä kova laskettamaan luikuria kuin poikansa) väitti et sen suhde gigoloon oli vaan pl atoninen (sen pitäis miellyttää pl atonisti Sopea). Sope ei uskonut ja riiteli typerän vaikka lihaxikkaan gigolon kaa. Äiskä julkaisi matkakirjoja niiden Euroopan reisusta. Artun väikkäriä se piti käsittämättömänä, eikä käsittänyt kuka haluis ostaa sen, saati lukea. (Arvaa vituttiko äidin keuliminen Arttua.) Arttu huusi pää punasena et sen (Artun) juttuja luettas paljon sen jälkeen kun Hannan matkakirjat ja romskut olis unohtuneet. (Ja niinhän siinä kävi.) Ize asiassa Brockhaus suostu kustantamaan Artun prujauxen vaan koska sen äidin kirjat möi niin hyvin. Mut myöhemmin osat vaihtuivat, ja Brockhaus lopulta nettos paljon enemmän koalasta kuin sen äidistä. Molempien kuvat oli Brockhausin seinällä. Kerrankin sovussa.
ellauri037.html on line 579: Tässä vaiheessa Sope tutustui myös Herderin oppilaaseen Majeriin, joka opetti sille Upanishadia. Sopen mielestä Buddha oli lähes yhtä kova jäbä kuin Plato ja Kant. Se luki vielä Bhagavad Gitan ja jotain värikuvapainoxia hinduismista, pl us takusti Kama Sutran , vaikkei sitä mainita. Semmielestä buddhismi oli ihan ykkösuskonto, koska se selittää myös peräkkäisten mutta silti niin samanlaisten villakoirien ytimen, se on sielunvaellus. Myöhemmin Sope väitti et se oli kexinyt intialaisen filosofian ize, yhdennäköisyys vedoihin on pelkkää sattumaa.
ellauri037.html on line 624: daß es sich um eine pl atonische Freundschaft handle, hatte
ellauri037.html on line 692: Michael Masiello on ope, esteetti, humanisti, joki porukoilleen (river to his peopl e). Ajatusten Tonava. Ceausescu yllättyi kun kansa ei enää hurrannut. Ei tiennyt mitä ajatella siitä, joki tyrehtyi. Tahaton humanisti taas. Masin miälestä Sope on briljantti pessimisti, briljantimpi vielä kuin Masi, siis genius, se on myönnettävä ilman sarvia ja hampaita. Tän briljantin pointin lisäx Masi briljeeraa huomauttamalla lyöntivirheestä.
ellauri037.html on line 700: Pikemminkin päinvastoin! Schopenhauer jumaloi Kanttia, ja piti Hegelin yrityxiä oikoa Kantin mokia vastenmielisinä. Schopenhauerin asennetta Hegeliin voisi pitää lähes apopl ektisenä eklotuxena, yhtä syvänä vihana kuin Kierkegaardin, joka oli kanssa aika täyteläistä.
ellauri038.html on line 18: The Walrus and the Carpenter play:none">Yli-inhimillistä
ellauri038.html on line 63: Diese Szene lebt von privaten und literarischen Anspielungen, die eine pl ump misogyne Interpretation besprechen. Die mittelalterliche Fabel, wie der alte Aristoteles von einer jungen Frau namens Phyllis , in die er närrisch verliebt ist, gedemütigt wird, war wahrscheinlich der Hintergrund für die Inszenierung des berühmten Fotos von 38-jährigen Friedrich Nietzsche mit der damals 21-jährigen genialischen Freundin Lou Andreas-Salomé und der Peitsche in ihrer Hand. 6 Jahre später war er kuckeliku.
ellauri038.html on line 143: Nietzschefänit on enimmäxeen hölmöjä ja/tai kusipäitä: Martin Heidegger , Jacques Derrida and Michel Foucault ; Carl Jung and Sigmund Freud , two of the founding figures of psychiatry; and writers such as Albert Camus , Jean-Paul Sartre , Thomas Mann and Hermann Hesse . Nippu narsisteja pl us koko dritter Reich riippuu psykopaatin wiixissä. Sis tän mursuwiixisen, sen H-alkuisen Lassi Hiekkala-tyyppisissä viixissä ei kukaan kauan roikkunut.
ellauri038.html on line 202: During the first few years of their marriage, Max taught in Berlin, then, in 1894, at the University of Heidelberg. During this time, Marianne pursued her own studies. After moving to Freiburg in 1894, she studied with a leading neo-Kantian philosopher, Heinrich Rickert. She also began to engage herself in the women´s movement after hearing prominent feminist speakers at a political congress in 1895. In 1896, in Heidelberg, she co-founded a society for the circulation of feminist thought. She also worked with Max to raise the level of women students attending the university. Max found them depl orably charmless.
ellauri038.html on line 218: Weber's career as a feminist public speaker ended abruptly in 1935 when Hitler dissolved the League of German Women's Associations. During the time of the Nazi regime up until the Allied Occupation of Germany in 1945, she held a weekly salon.[17] While criticisms of Nazi atrocities were sometimes subtly impl ied, she told interviewer Howard Becker in 1945 that "we restricted ourselves to philosophical, religious and aesthetic topics, making our criticism of the Nazi system between the lines, as it were. None of us were the stuff of which martyrs were made." Ymmärrettävää.
ellauri038.html on line 261: Joku Maudemarie Clark on kiistänyt tyhmien postmodernistien väittämän et Nietzsche olis ollu joku prepostmodernisti, jolle kaikki mielipiteet on yhtä tosia. Preposterous huutaa Clark. Clarkin mielestä Nietzsche vaan hylkäs Kantin (muista ääntämys: Käänt!) erottelun havaittavissa olevien ilmiöiden ja asioiden välillä an sich . Mustakin se on tolloa pl atonismia, nakkaan roskakoriin Nietzschen perässä.
ellauri038.html on line 285: Ei ollut, vaikka sen sisko oli. Retu ehti kuolla ennen nazeja. Nazixi siinä oli muutamia vikoja: se oli sairaalloinen piipunrassi, se ei tykännyt saxalaisista eikä armeijasta, ja sillä oli jutkukavereita (Rée, ainaskin aluxi). Plussaa nazeista oli ettei se tykännyt kristityistä. (Hmm. ehkä isäpappa oli käyttänyt sielunhoidossa liian konkreettisia otteita? Ehkä pyllistyxet ei jääneet pelkkiin rukouxiin?) Nazipl ussaa myös ettei Nietzsche piittaa mistään tasa-arvosta. Sosiaalidarwinismia se peukuttaa ihan raakana. Nietzschen hall of famessa on muutamia erityisen mainioita uuberkuskeja, nimittäin: Goethe , Beethoven and Nietzsche ize. Ja näille neroille pitää antaa palkinnoxi mitä ne vaan haluuvat etuja. Tää sopii nazeille, ja tää sopii myös vaurastuneille jenkeille. Jos ne olis käyttäytyneet kunnollammin, ne ei oisi päässeet neroixi. Ne tarvizee ankaraa izerakkautta. Mitä paskaa. Exe nyt oo aika läpinäkyvää et hemmo laittaa izensä johkin top 10 listalle. Jos joku tekee jonkun 10 kärjessä luettelon johon se kuin sattumalta ize joutuu ihan kärkipäähän, niin nakkaa rodeen. Sekä lista että tekijä. Kasta dem i sopena!
ellauri039.html on line 18: 𝔐𝔞𝔵 𝔲𝔫𝔡 𝔐𝔬𝔯𝔦𝔱𝔷 play:none">Käytännön piloja
ellauri039.html on line 224: reunustamaa tietä avokupl afolkkarilla Offenburgin
ellauri039.html on line 231: Tästä siis pl ussaa, sitten oikaisuja. Anna kexi
ellauri039.html on line 264: Kari oli törkee pl agiaatti Sirkka-tädin Gilesistä.
ellauri039.html on line 325: Niinpä. Vyötärö on paxu, mut kazanto on kapea. Sivistystä ei enää minkäänlaista, ei sydämen eikä pään. Keneltähän tässä puuttuu historian tajua. Näitä wannabe kultapossuja nousee joka polvessa. Self empl oyed freelance journalisti Haisu Pervonen on ehkä tietämättään sellainen.
ellauri039.html on line 353: Nähtävästi Hatsipompponen on lyönyt omankin päänsä kovaa joskus, ja kokenut rasismia Kansasin ja Massachusettsin takamezissä. Elämä on vain väliaikaista, laulaa suomalainen kupl etisti Tapsa Rautavaarakin.
ellauri039.html on line 375: The severely beaten professor suffered multipl e broken bones near her eyes and nose.
ellauri039.html on line 384: "The process of making paper by hand allows me to be humble," according to Hatsipompponen's faculty profile. "As pl ant fiber, its beauty must be generated from nature. Our hands have brought paper into being. In paper resides a communion of nature and humanity." She wants to reveal a significant female job throughout the entire existence of papermaking. She thinks blank paper makes a Powerful Statement, as do stone and scissors.
ellauri039.html on line 398: This unit deals with the statement "I am from Germany" as an inclusive identity for peopl e who live in Germany today. The material is aimed at second-year German students. The goal of the unit is to show the diversity of peopl e who live in Germany, to inform the students about how Germans and non-Germans are differentiated, to allow students to experience some attitudes held by and against certain groups of peopl e living in Germany, and to expect students to have an awareness of what it can mean when someone says "I am from Germany." The REFLECTION section can be found in each of the various subsections of the unit.
ellauri039.html on line 406: The music is a folksong that spans four centuries; and the students become aware of the continuity of German culture through folksongs.The background material is disseminated in the form of pictures, statistics, and a historical time-line. Motivation and interest is generated through the songs which focus the learner on the fact that the lesson involves products of German culture. While reading, the learners are confronted not just with the separation of Germany, but also with the division of the Germans in Germany. On the cognitive level, learners gather information about Germany's recent past from World War II to the present. Given these facts the learners connect the past with the German's recent fixation on "Vergangenheits- und Gegenwartsbewältigung." Learners take this theoretical information and expl ore sites found on the Internet where they find information in German on the issue of identity. This activity forms the basis for reaching a consensus on such questions as:
ellauri039.html on line 419: In 1912 a statue of Ännchen von Tharau was erected in honour of the poet, Simon Dach in Klaipeda (Memel). Rouva Burda oli 3-vuotias. It got lost (destroyed) during the war and was repl aced by a bust of Hitler in 1939. Aenne täytti 30v. In 1989 members of the "Ännchen von Tharau Verein" (club), founded by "vertriebenen Memelländern", (Germans who were driven out of the Memelland) and exiled Lithuanians, erected the new statue of Ännchen von Tharau.
ellauri039.html on line 507: Some background, I came from a poor town in Virgina from an even more poor family. I grew up a short time in a city, and the contrast to Finland and those pl aces are staggering.
ellauri039.html on line 509: Americas healthcare system is still in its evolutionary stage, where as Finland provides affordable healthcare. My left ear was damaged by a doctor who refused to fix it, because we were poor, we couldn't take legal action or afford to fix my ear. I was nearly deaf in my right ear for all of my teens and twenties. When I moved to Finland, it was simpl e to fix and only costed me 40€ (approximately 41/42$). Compared to the estimated 12k they were going to charge me back home it was a god send.
ellauri039.html on line 511: The vegetables are vastly cheaper and better quality. Despite Virgina, and where I am from being farming land, they only farm soy, cotton, and what we called "horse corn". Here, Finland has an intense growing season that is short but pl entiful. Rutabagas, Beets, Carrots, Potatoes, Tomatoes, are all vegetables I have seen locally sourced from Finland. You can get 2kg of Rutabegas for .59/kg! I was never able to find that kinda deal back home, even at farmer markets. So eating healthy is definitely easier here than it was back home.
ellauri039.html on line 513: Public Transportation is common and amazing. We didn't have buses where I lived, and sidewalks? Hah! funny. Street crossing signs and areas? nope. The buses are not the cleanest, but they are clean even when they have been carting peopl e all day, they remain pretty clean.
ellauri039.html on line 521: For me, a developed nation is one in which it cares for it´s peopl e. That accepts science when it says “this affects your health negatively", and says “we don't want our peopl e sick"
ellauri039.html on line 726: Camus´n tunnetuimpia teoksia ovat Sivullinen (1942), Rutto (1948) ja Kapinoiva ihminen (1953). Hän sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1957. Hän oli Rudyard Kipl ingin jälkeen nuorin palkinnon vastaanottaja. Right on!
ellauri039.html on line 770: Howards End is a novel by E. M. Forster, first published in 1910, about social conventions, codes of conduct and relationships in turn-of-the-century England. Howards End is considered by many to be Forster´s masterpiece. The book was conceived in June 1908 and worked on throughout the following year; it was compl eted in July 1910. In 1998, the Modern Library ranked Howards End 38th on its list of the 100 best English-language novels of the 20th century.
ellauri039.html on line 772: The story revolves around three families in England at the beginning of the 20th century: the Wilcoxes, rich capitalists with a fortune made in the colonies; the half-German Schlegel siblings (Margaret, Helen, and Tibby), whose cultural pursuits have much in common with the Bloomsbury Group; and the Basts, an impoverished young coupl e from a lower-class background. The idealistic, intelligent Schlegel sisters seek to help the struggling Basts and to rid the Wilcoxes of some of their deep-seated social and economic prejudices.
ellauri039.html on line 774: John Galsworthy OM (/ˈɡɔːlzwɜːrði/; 14 August 1867 – 31 January 1933) was an English novelist and pl aywright. Notable works include The Forsyte Saga (1906–1921) and its sequels, A Modern Comedy and End of the Chapter. He won the Nobel Prize in Literature in 1932.
ellauri039.html on line 776: The Forsyte Saga, first published under that title in 1922, is a series of three novels and two interludes published between 1906 and 1921 by Nobel Prize–winning English author John Galsworthy. They chronicle the vicissitudes of the leading members of a large, upper-middle-class English family, similar to Galsworthy´s family. Only a few generations removed from their farmer ancestors, the family members are keenly aware of their status as "new money". The main character, Soames Forsyte, sees himself as a "man of property" by virtue of his ability to accumulate material possessions – but this does not succeed in bringing him pl easure.
ellauri040.html on line 20: Schwarze Parze play:none">McGarmiwaa
ellauri040.html on line 153: Eskin ja Sopen iloxi Jyrki jakaa filosofian ammatilliseen, akateemiseen koulufilosofiaan ja kansantajuisempaan moraalifilosofiaan eli izehoitoon. Ääripäiden välillä partioivat juhamanniset ja häiriintyneet häyryt (pl us Himo Airaxinen, voisin lisätä). Molemmat päät tyytyvät toistamaan pienen nollan muotoisen ympyränsä vakiintuneita latteuxia.
ellauri040.html on line 174: Maken ja Jykän omat kirjallisuus- terrorismi- ym pl äjäyxet siantappoaseessa on aika päättömiä ja hyvinkin nenäkkäitä piipunrassilällätyxiä. Niihin ei kannata tuhlata aikaa eikä tupakkaa. Kumpakin on mulla pl akkarissa aika hinzusti.
ellauri040.html on line 209: Raukoilla rajoilla -kirjan ja 60-vuotispäivän jälkeen on toinen lapinlahden linnuista vaiennut, tai ainakin sen samanniminen pl oki. Viimeinen merkintä on v 2017. Hannu Riikonen antoi Maken magnum opuxelle ansiosta myönteistä arvostelua, haukkuuhan se etevästi ison nipun suomalaisia kirjallisuuden suurmiehiä ja nostaa esiin unohdettuja kuten se ize, joitakin naisiakin. Memento mori. Nix nax.
ellauri040.html on line 327: The generation born compl etely within the technological age, war on terror, and multiculturalism. This generation is the first true global culture as their characteristics and trend is more uniform across the globe as they become the most open minded generation to date.
ellauri040.html on line 333: More recently metamodernism, post-postmodernism and the "death of postmodernism" have been widely debated: in 2007 Andrew Hoberek noted in his introduction to a special issue of the journal Twentieth Century Literature titled "After Postmodernism" that "declarations of postmodernism's demise have become a critical commonpl ace". A small group of critics has put forth a range of theories that aim to describe culture or society in the alleged aftermath of postmodernism, most notably Raoul Eshelman (performatism), Gilles Lipovetsky (hypermodernity), Nicolas Bourriaud (altermodern), and Alan Kirby (digimodernism, formerly called pseudo-modernism). None of these new theories or labels have so far gained very widespread acceptance. Sociocultural anthropologist Nina Müller-Schwarze offers neostructuralism as a possible direction.
ellauri040.html on line 337: ploads/2011/03/article_large-3.jpg" />
ellauri040.html on line 350: Deleuze harjoitti filosofiaa yli 40 vuotta ja kirjoitti yli 20 teosta. Deleuzen keskeisiä teoksia ovat uuden Nietzsche-tulkinnan aloittanut Nietzsche ja filosofia (1962) sekä eron ja toiston filosofiaa käsitellyt Différence et répétition (1968). Toisto tyylikeinona. Hänen suosituimmat teoksensa ovat yhdessä psykoanalyytikko Félix Guattarin kanssa julkaistut Anti-Oidipus: Kapitalismi ja skitsofrenia (1972) ja Mille pl ateaux (1980). Hirveää idealismiä ja myöhäiskapitalismin hurrausta.
ellauri040.html on line 542: Pappi piti tulla Reetistäkin äidin pl äänissä. Kylnää meeminikkarit on tosi usein meeminikkareiden pentuja. Kotiopettajan tarina tuli siitä vaan, hullu sellainen. Sai potkut bylsittyään oppilansa äitiä, niinkuin Punaisessa ja mustassa. Näin kävi monta kerta myöhemminkin, eiku äidin luo Nyrtingeniin takaisin. Luulosairas siitä tuli ja sekopää äidin hoteissa.
ellauri040.html on line 589: Sir Thaddeus (in Polish Pan Tadeusz, czyli ostatni zajazd na Litwie. Historia szlachecka z roku 1811 i 1812 we dwunastu księgach wierszem) is a long poem with an even longer name by Lithuanian romantic poet Adam Mickiewicz. It is regarded as a Polish national epic. It was first published in Paris in 1834. The poet was then in exile in France. Sir Thaddeus is a story of a conflict between two noble families, the Sopl icas and the Horeszkos. The time is 1811 and 1812, shortly before Napoleon invaded Russia. When attacked by Russian soldiers, both families fought against the enemy. When not, they fought each other. The conflict between the families was ended with the marriage of Thaddeus Sopl ica and Sophia Horeszko.
ellauri040.html on line 598: Lithuania, my country, thou art like health; how much thou shouldst be prized only he can learn who has lost thee. To-day thy beauty in all its spl endour I see and describe, for I yearn for thee. (Translation in prose by George Rapall Noyes).
ellauri040.html on line 610: ja mutapl ottujen sammakoista pienistä,
ellauri041.html on line 26: NORSU LUKEE play:none">Vaikealukuista
ellauri041.html on line 141: No sitten on genitaalien peukuttajat, jotka koittaa dupl ikoida geenejä.
ellauri041.html on line 260: Olit ajatellut tunkeutua, Kordillieerien meziin, preerioille, ylängöille ezimään tutkimusmatkailija Maranaa joka on kadonnut eziessään romaanijoen alkulähteitä mutta törmäät päin vankilayhteiskunnan kaltereita, jotka kattavat koko pl aneetan ja pakottavat seikkailun pysymään viheliäisissä käytävissään jotka ovat aina samanlaisia...
ellauri041.html on line 266: Syy 2 on perustavampaa laatua. Tää apina on elukka, ja elukalla on vaan noi 3 halua: EAT! EAT! FUCK! FUCK! KILL! KILL!, eikä se halua mitään lukea eikä kazoa mikä ei käsittele noita 3 aihetta, niiden saavuttamista (komedia) tai menettämistä (tragedia). Kaikki kompl exius tulee ympäristöstä, apinassa izessään ei ole muuta kuin nää 3 vaihdetta. Kun ympäristö muuttuu monokulttuurixi, monopolisoituu ja monotonisoituu kulttuuri.
ellauri041.html on line 302: Pieni pyörä pyörii vinhasti, ison pyörä liikahtaa yhden rattaan eteenpäin. Sekunteja, minuutteja, tunteja, päiviä vuosia, yxi elämä, ziljoonia elämiä, rax, yhteishuutoa, värähdys voiman kentässä, pl aneetta sammuu kuin kynttilä, uusi maailma. Kaikki loppuu yxiltä, toisilla kaikki alkaa alusta. Onni yxillä, kesä kaikilla. Luovaa tuhoa.
ellauri041.html on line 709: vetää napaan paistia pl us makkaraa.
ellauri041.html on line 937: War pl ötzlich der leidige Satan da!
ellauri041.html on line 968: und pl ärrend und mit Ach und Krach
ellauri041.html on line 1109: Der Doktor aber nimmt sein Parapl ü
ellauri041.html on line 1111: Horch! - pl ötzlich wie des Gerichts Trumpete,
ellauri041.html on line 1819: Flaubert kurkkii pl ataanien siimeksestä
ellauri041.html on line 1935: Spearman congratulates Netflix for picking up the show as it contributes to "telling international stories from pl aces Americans don't consider"; Jonathon Wilson of Ready Steady Cut says that it is "another solid piece of overseas programming".
ellauri041.html on line 1970: Maailma on väärällään imbesillejä, siis aivan totaalisia idiootteja, ja kaikkein traagisinta on, että ne nyt pääsevät pitämään älämölöänsä netissä. Olihan ennenkin yhtä hulluja, lähes yhtä monta (pl us väestönlisäys), mutta niitä ei sentään tarvinnut nähdä eikä kuulla.
ellauri042.html on line 23: MUINAISAJAN ELÄIMIÄ play:none">Luonnonnoppia
ellauri042.html on line 94: Peopl e pushed to get away! Ihmiset tungexivat karkuun kuin jänixet,
ellauri042.html on line 96: were trampl ed underfoot by the Ei päässyt kukaan pakoon ihmisseinän alta,
ellauri042.html on line 124: for pl ay and exercise. leikille ja liikunnalle.
ellauri042.html on line 144: Across the pl ayground, Leikkikentän toisella puolella
ellauri042.html on line 182: Joo en mäkään usko mihkään "havahtumiseen". Kunhan pandemia hiipuu palataan entiseen tai pahempaan. Ei tässä mitään unta nähä. Tottakai jokainen huolehtii izestään, ja nuorempia hyväkuntoisia huolehtijoita on kuitenki lopulta enemmän kuin vanhuxia. Korkee aika päästä eroon sodan aiheuttamasta kupl asta. Laahustavat suuret ikäluokat on just noita 70+. Toinen ryhmä ansiokkaita ja eteviä koronan uhreja ovat mamut. Ruozalaiset älysi tän alusta lähtien, ja hyvinhän niillä pelittää, ne joita eniten kuolee tautiin on JUST ne joiden kermaperseiden ruozalaisten mielestä joutaakin kuolla, ne ei ois ize voinut valita paremmin. Sama jenkeissä, eniten turpiin saa köyhät läskit neekerit. Rajat ja asekaupat auki, talous eeku paranoo.
ellauri042.html on line 196: Joka apinalla on niitä pari kiloa jo suolistossa, pl us monta kertaa lisää löytyy
ellauri042.html on line 214: Yet despite our small biomass among animals, we’ve had an overwhelmingly huge impact on the pl anet. The chart above represents a massive amount of life. But it doesn’t show what’s gone missing since the human population took off.
ellauri042.html on line 218: And though pl ants are still the dominant form of life on Earth, the scientists suspect there used to be approximately twice as many of them — before humanity started clearing forests to make way for agriculture and our civilization.
ellauri042.html on line 285: laahusta uuniin, niin veto pysyy hyvänä, kupl at nousevat
ellauri042.html on line 287: otetaan entisiä köyhempiä, ja taas riistetään, kupl at kupl ivat
ellauri042.html on line 358: melottiin vesikirpulla mutapl otussa, luettiin kirjoja,
ellauri042.html on line 411: kuitenkin aikalailla vituttaa, tekis mieli mennä ja lärvästä pl äsiin tota huutajaa.
ellauri042.html on line 457: Joskus musta tuntuu, että mä elän ihan eri pl aneetalla kuin nää nykypolven hullut paskiaiset. Kunpa eläisinkin. Jumalan puoliso rukoili aamuisin, että jaxaisi rakastaa jumalaa. Sitä muutkin uskovaiset rukoilee. Seijan aamut alkaa runoilijan verenpaineisella paimentamisella. Jumalassa oli aika paljon julman tuttua. Sekin oli epäonnistunut runoilija. Ja Jens har ret, det er pur lort.
Keltaisen kaasupullon potkiminen kohti kaasukeitintä oli hyvä vinjetti.
ellauri042.html on line 465: I korte, enkeltstående scener følger romanen familien fra den ruller flyttevognen – med den lille Jens sovende i en kommodeskuffe på ladet – ind ved villaen i Risskov, til faren til sidst dør af kræft, og de fire voksne sønner samles til en fælles afsked. Det er med stor sans for det mundrette sprog og for det humoristiske og komiske, at Blendstrup skildrer faren, også i de mest usympatiske situationer, når han tager livet af en kat med en brevkniv, når han lader sin hund rasere en nabos hønsehus, når hans næver sidder løst, og familien gemmer sig bag låste døre og under gamle sofaer, når han pl anter sine drømme om jordomrejse til havs i sine sønners hoveder, men ender med at drikke pengene op.
ellauri042.html on line 477: Romanen blev et gennembrud for Blendstrup, der før Gud taler ud skrev i kortere genrer. Han debuterede med novellesamlingen Mennesker i en mistbænk i 1994. Blendstrups tone er bramfri, men blandet med en fin følsomhed over for det nære. Humoren, det groteske og det surrealistiske går igen i Blendstrups forfatterskab. Jens Blendstrup har siden Gud taler ud skrevet både noveller, romaner, dramatik og tekster til Frodegruppen 40, som han også er forsanger i. Han tager den selvbiografiske fortælling op igen med romanen Bombaygryde fra 2010. Sammen med litteraturkritikeren Lars Bukdahl optræder Blendstrup med den unikke genre ’litterær hypnose’, som er en blanding af dilettantkomedie, opl æsning og dans. Blendstrup er blevet kaldt litteraturens pølsemand, og som en del af forfatterskabets eksistentielle komik står han ikke tilbage for at læse sine tekster højt med en tehætte på hovedet. Men med Gud taler ud står Jens Blendstrup også tydeligt frem som villavejsvidne, hvor det almindelige skildres i dets mange facetter, og det, der på overfladen ligner et almindeligt, rutinepræget liv i et almindeligt, rutinepræget forstadskvarter, viser sig at rumme både små og store særheder.
ellauri042.html on line 500: Despite references to the family patriarch as "God", this isn't a fantasy story. Word of God is set very much in the real world. It's a vignette rather than a pl ot-driven story, a tale of a cranky man and how his wife and three sons deal with him while trying to maintain their dignity and sanity.
ellauri042.html on line 502: The youngest son narrates the tale. He, his brothers, and his mother are all sympathetic characters, relatively normal peopl e, though each has their own beliefs, quirks, and problems. The failure of my-way-or-the-highway Dad to show respect or even empathy for those who disagree drives the story. He could have been portrayed as an easy person to hate, but even with his limitations, it's obvious he is still trying to do good. To that extent, this film succeeds.
ellauri042.html on line 547: Tähän vielä sitaatteja Herlinin pl ärästä. "Toivon että se, että jatkan matkustamista ei tee minusta tuomittavaa kansalaista".
Vittu suomittava paskiainen on tää 5.5 huonon tuuman lerppu levyke. "Olemme tukahduttaneet pahan olemassaolon".
Eipä tosiaankaan, yx viruxella tai mieluummin hamppuköydellä tukahdutettava paha tässä vielä pällistelee lehdestä.
ellauri042.html on line 600: Painter Édouard Manet died of syphilis compl ications, including tabes dorsalis, in 1883, aged 51.
ellauri042.html on line 602: Maupassant tried to take his own life by cutting his throat; failing even that, he was committed to the private asylum of Esprit Blanche at Passy, in Paris, where he died on 6 July 1893 from syphilis. Maupassant penned his own epitaph: "I have coveted everything and taken pl easure in nothing."
ellauri042.html on line 644: Part of Pope's bitter inspiration for the characters in the book come from his soured relationship with the royal court. The Princess of Wales Caroline of Ansbach, wife of George II, had supported Pope in her patronage of the arts. When she and her husband came to the throne in 1727 she had a much busier schedule and thus had less time for Pope who saw this oversight as a personal slight against him. When pl anning the Dunciad he based the character Dulness on Queen Caroline, as the fat, lazy and dull wife. Pope's bitterness against Caroline was a typical trait of his brilliant but unstable character. The King of the Dunces as the wife of Dulness was based on George II. Pope makes his views on the first two Georgian kings very clear in the Dunciad when he writes 'Still Dunce the second reigns like Dunce the first'.
ellauri042.html on line 648: The pl ot of the poem is simpl e. Dulness, the goddess, appears at a Lord Mayor's Day in 1724 and notes that her king, Elkannah Settle, has died. She chooses Lewis Theobald as his successor. In honour of his coronation, she holds heroic games. He is then transported to the Templ e of Dulness, where he has visions of the future. The poem has a consistent setting and time, as well. Book I covers the night after the Lord Mayor's Day, Book II the morning to dusk, and Book III the darkest night. Furthermore, the poem begins at the end of the Lord Mayor's procession, goes in Book II to the Strand, then to Fleet Street (where booksellers were), down by Bridewell Prison to the Fleet ditch, then to Ludgate at the end of Book II; in Book III, Dulness goes through Ludgate to the City of London to her templ e.
ellauri042.html on line 669: Kuuntelin Easter Paradea starrin Judy Garland ja Fred Astaire. Kyllä se olikin syvältä perseestä. Hanurimusiikkia Jenkeistä. Fred on niin homon näköinen et on vaikee uskoa. Fred Astaire may have married twice and had children, but Gore Vidal told his nephew he shafted the famous dancer and actor in Hollywood. Olen pederasti, sanoi Vidal toimittajalle. Have a nice day! sanoi taxikuski Vidalille. No, I have other pl ans for the day, Vidal läppäsi. Se kävi paljon Bangkokissa. Harri Jäppinen kävi Indonesiassa.
ellauri042.html on line 697: Dostoevsky´s literary work has strong autobiographical elements. We know from him that he suffered from hallucinations already in early childhood. He presented idiotic characters with confused views about freedom of choice, religion, socialism, atheism, good and evil. Many of his characters suffered – like the author himself – from epilepsy. Other famous peopl e also suffered from epilepsy (Alexander the Great, Caesar, Gustave Flaubert, and Lord Byron). Flaubert had religiously tinted visions. The first 2 guys thought they were gods.
ellauri042.html on line 701: In 1833, the family moved to Tula where the father bought a manor. Shortly after the death of his mother in 1837, Fyodor (16 yrs) was sent to St. Petersburg where he entered the Army Engineering College. 2 years later, in 1839, Dostoevsky´s more and more tyrannical father died, probably of apopl exy, but there were strong rumours that he was murdered by his own serfs in a quarrel. (Unless it was Fedja who dunit.) Against the background of this legend, Sigmund Freud later interpreted the patricide in the novel “The brothers Karamazov” as showing Fedja hated his father´s guts. True, but the main thing was the epilepsy, wait and see.
ellauri042.html on line 708: During repeated trips to many European cities in the years 1862–1865, Dostoevsky got to know the compl acence and arrogance of the aristocratic European ‘Bourgeoisie’. These experiences strengthened his slavophilic attitude and expl ain his xenophilia.
ellauri042.html on line 717: Dostoevsky´s illness influenced some peculiarities of his writing, his language and style. Dostoevsky´s bad memory was well known; he had to take notes for everything His language is nervous, tense and impulsive. His phrases are sometimes long and compl icated, containing a fanciful conglomeration of colloquial words and expressions, official, journalistic and scientific terms, and slips of the tongue, foreign words, names and quotations. But now and then we can see here very short, elliptic phrases.
ellauri042.html on line 719: Dostoevsky´s favorite word was “vdrug” (“suddenly”). A lot of events in Dostoevsky´s novels begin suddenly, without preparations and expl anation – like seizures. (But he did at times have a manic aura just before.) Dostoevsky also used frequent repetitions of the same word with different intonations. It made an impression of convulsions and shocked the literary critics. He wrote in a meticulous manner, using every empty space of a sheet (see Fig. 2). His style showed a tendency toward extensive and in some cases compulsive writing, and the writings were often concerned with moral, ethical, or religious issues. This may reflect a syndrome of interictal behavior changes that was described in temporal lobe epilepsy by Waxman and Geschwind.
ellauri042.html on line 743: Osoittaako vanhan ruhtinaan rakkaus että Fedja on setämies? onko teos huumorin varjolla misogyyninen? Onko Fedjalla misogyynimainetta? Oliko sekin kenties kaappihomo? Yx naispl okkari kertoo tällästä:
ellauri042.html on line 747: Sillä oli myöhemmin seikkailu toisen naisen kanssa jonka nimi oli Appolinaria Suslova (no joo, Apollinaria, stipl u), nuori nainen johon se oli ankarasti pihkassa. Vaikka se oli kovasti siihen rakastunut, Doston pelihimo yhdistettynä mirrin flirttailuun jonku toisen miehen kaa teki lopun niiden suhteesta.
ellauri042.html on line 768: ploads/2018/08/Josef-Mengele-2.png" height="200px" />
ellauri042.html on line 774: Josef Mengele ([ˈjoːzɛf ˈmɛŋələ] ( lyssna)), även känd som Dödsängeln (tyska Todesengel) och Den vita ängeln (tyska Der weiße Engel), född 16 mars 1911 i Günzburg, död 7 februari 1979 i Bertioga i delstaten São Paulo i Brasilien, var en tysk nazistisk läkare, humangenetiker och människorättsbrottsling. Mengele är mest känd för sin verksamhet i koncentrations- och förintelselägret Auschwitz-Birkenau, där han företog pseudovetenskapl iga experiment på bland annat tvillingar och dvärgväxta.
ellauri042.html on line 776: Josef Mengele var stationerad i koncentrationslägret Auschwitz från den 30 maj 1943 till den 18 januari 1945, där han var chefsläkare. Han utförde hänsynslösa och för medicinvetenskapen tvivelaktiga experiment på lägerfångar, med full licens för att lemlästa eller döda dem. Han valde även ut vilka judar som skulle föras till gaskamrarna vid ankomst till lägret. Främst valde han att experimentera på dvärgar och enäggstvillingar, som kom att benämnas "Mengeles tvillingar". Även vivisektion utfördes på fångarna. Vidare utfördes experiment på ögon där Mengele genom olika metoder försökte ändra ögonfärg på fångar från brun till blå, bland annat med bläckinjektioner vilket kunde leda till blindhet, smärta och infektioner. Han utförde operationer där han pl ockade ut olika delar ur kropparna. Mengele injicerade också till exempel kloroform direkt in i hjärtat på offren, för att kunna utföra försök med färska lik. Många operationer och experiment utfördes dessutom utan bedövning. Många av dem som överlevde Mengeles experiment blev svårt skadade och led av invalidiserande skador efter kriget. Vid ett tillfälle övervakade Mengele två romska barn när de syddes ihop i syfte att skapa siamesiska tvillingar.
ellauri042.html on line 793: Tengele konstaterar däremot att rapporten satt fingret på dödligheten på Sveriges äldreboenden. Där gick det just som pl anerat. Nu finns de inga patienter i den riskgruppen längre. Istället fick vi en hel del färska lik.
ellauri042.html on line 800: Mutta ei. Ne on vaan korvamatoja, samoja mitä niiden on pitänyt muutenkin tahtomattaan hyräillä. Olli on romantikko. Romantikot tuppaa olemaan porvarillisia vakavikkoja. Yhden ictal pl easure on toisen profound joy. Olli pitää kiinni mieluusti joystickistä. Lapsuudenmuistot ei ole sille vaan kivoja vaan pyhiä. Fedja-setä ja Marcel Proust raahataan taas framille.
ellauri042.html on line 807: samasta kohtaa päätä. Urkuharmoonia soitetaan ja kontempl oidaan transsendenttiä. Kumarretaan näkymätöntä kolmionmuotoista silverbäkkiä jolla on silmä selässä. Olli vertaa moroneja Bertie Russelliin. Osuva vertaus. Ikäviä ihmisiä molemmat.
ellauri042.html on line 811: Sacks forbade any mention of his homosexuality, though he had told his would-be biographer Wechsler about his closeted yearnings and crippl ed attempts at love. His Boswell shelved the notes for 30 years. Ollie changed his mind on his deathbed: Do it! You must!
ellauri042.html on line 817: His moronic patients called him “deepl y eccentric” and described him as “huge, a full beard, black leather jacket covering T-shirts riddled with holes, huge shoes, his trousers looking like they were going to slide off his body.” A friend from Sacks’s days as a medical resident remembers him as a “big, free-ranging animal” who one day “drank some blood … chasing it with milk. There was something about his need to cross taboos. Back in those days, in the early ’60s, he was heavily into drugs, downing whole handfuls of them, especially speed and LSD.”
ellauri042.html on line 881: Tähän samaan meditaatioon 17 viittaa siis nähtävästi myös Ernesto Hemingway kirja Komu zvoni jonka löysin vanhojen proffien roskahyllystä: "In zato nikoli ne vprašajo komu zvoni; Tebi zvoni". Tää on tämmönen imperialistinen tiimipl äjäys, territoriaalista reviirihenkeä. Muin. roomalaiset sanoivat: tum tua res agitur paries cum proximus ardet , jenkkien versio oli dominoteoria. Joo ei, enmä pidä tosta Donnen ajatuxesta. Se on ihan liian totalitäärinen. On parempi apinoille olla niinkuin Ahvenanmaan saaristo, erillisiä saaria mutta näköetäisyyden päässä toisistaan, niin että niihin pääsee uimalla tai soutuveneellä. Saarten kellot soivat aina ize kullekin mutta soitto kuuluu vaimeana muillekin.
ellauri042.html on line 926: Princes do but pl ay us; compared to this, Prinssit ei oo mitään tähän verrattuna,
ellauri042.html on line 937: John Donne is most commonly known for being part of the ‘metaphysical poets’, a group of poets who wrote about love and religion using compl ex metaphors called conceits. These poets didn’t know each other, and this name was given by literary critics some years later. Nevertheless, John Donne is considered to be one of the best metaphysical poets. John Donne converted to Anglicanism later in his life. By 1615 he became a priest because King James I ordered him to do so. Donne was a member of Parliament in 1601 and in 1614. He also spent a short time in prison because he married his wife, Anne More, without permission. They had twelve children and Anne died while extruding the XIIth.
ellauri042.html on line 941: His father died in 1576, when Donne was four years old, leaving his mother, Elizabeth, with the responsibility of raising the children alone.[2] Heywood was also from a recusant Roman Catholic family, the daughter of John Heywood, the pl aywright, and sister of the Reverend Jasper Heywood, a Jesuit priest and translator.[2] She was also a great-niece of Thomas More. A few months after her husband died, Donne's mother married Dr. John Syminges, a wealthy widower with three children of his own.
ellauri042.html on line 951: Although King James was pl eased with Donne's work, he refused to reinstate him at court and instead urged him to take holy orders. At length, Donne acceded to the king's wishes, and in 1615 was ordained priest in the Church of England. In late November and early December 1623 he suffered a nearly fatal illness, thought to be either typhus or a combination of a cold followed by a period of fever. During his convalescence he wrote a series of meditations and prayers on health, pain, and sickness that were published as a book in 1624 under the title of Devotions upon Emergent Occasions. One of these meditations, Meditation XVII, contains the well known phrases "No man is an Iland" (often modernised as "No man is an island") and "...for whom the bell tolls".
ellauri042.html on line 953: Anne gave birth to twelve children in sixteen years of marriage, (including two stillbirths—their eighth and then, in 1617, their last child); indeed, she spent most of her married life either pregnant or nursing. The ten surviving children were Constance, John, George, Francis, Lucy (named after Donne´s patroness Lucy, Countess of Bedford, her godmother), Bridget, Mary, Nicholas, Margaret, and Elizabeth. Three (Francis, Nicholas, and Mary) died before they were ten. In a state of despair that almost drove him to kill himself, Donne noted that the death of a child would mean one mouth fewer to feed, but he could not afford the burial expenses. During this time, Donne wrote but did not publish Biathanatos, his defense of suicide. Anne died on 15 August 1617, five days after giving birth to their twelfth child, a still-born baby. Donne mourned her deepl y, and wrote of his love and loss in his 17th Holy Sonnet.
ellauri043.html on line 19: ANTTONI PYP PIPO play:none">Kielilläpuhumista
ellauri043.html on line 138: {placent.free.fr/Flaubert/saint%20Antoine.html">alakuperräinen }
ellauri043.html on line 204: The Mỹ Lai Massacre (/ˌmiːˈlaɪ/; Vietnamese: Thảm sát Mỹ Lai [tʰâːm ʂǎːt mǐˀ lāːj] (About this soundlisten)) was the Vietnam War mass murder of unarmed South Vietnamese civilians by U.S. troops in Sơn Tịnh District, South Vietnam, on 16 March 1968. Between 347 and 504 unarmed peopl e were killed by U.S. Army soldiers from Company C, 1st Battalion, 20th Infantry Regiment and Company B, 4th Battalion, 3rd Infantry Regiment, 11th Brigade, 23rd (Americal) Infantry Division. Victims included men, women, children, and infants. Some of the women were gang-raped and their bodies mutilated as were children as young as 12.[1][2] Twenty-six soldiers were charged with criminal offenses, but only Lieutenant William Calley Jr., a pl atoon leader in C Company, was convicted. Found guilty of killing 22 villagers, he was originally given a life sentence, but served only three and a half years under house arrest.
ellauri043.html on line 491:
Matto tuntuu ihanalta, yhä ihanammalta, niin että se pulskistuu, pöyhistyy, siitä tulee vuode, vuoteesta kumivene; vesi lipl attaa sen kylkiin.
ellauri043.html on line 492: Vasemmalla ja oikealla nousee kaksi maankielekettä ja niiden välissä viljelysmaita, sykomoriviikunapuita siellä täällä. Kellojen, tamburiinien ja laulajien ääniä kuuluu kaukaa. Ne on väkeä matkalla Kanopoxeen nukkumaan Serapiin temppelin päällä nähdäxeen unia. Anttoni tietää tän; ja se liukuu tuulen työntämänä kanaalin kahden rannan välissä. Papyruxen lehdet ja lumpeen punaiset kukat, yli miehenkokoiset, kaartuu sen ylize. Se venyy veneen pohjalla; peräairo viistää vettä. Aika ajoin saapuu lämmin tuulahdus, ja hennot kaislat kahisevat. Pienten laineiden lipl atus heikkenee. A:n valtaa uneliaisuus. Se näkee unta että se on egyptiläinen munkki.
ellauri043.html on line 919: Jos sä haluisit, jos vaan haluisit!… Mulla on paviljonki niemellä maakannaxella kahden valtameren välissä. Se on paneloitu pl exilasilla, parketti on kilpikonnankuorta, ja se avautuu neljään ilmansuuntaan. Sieltä yläältä mä nään mun laivastot ja väen joka nousee ylös mäkeä taakat selässä. Me nukuttais höyhentäkeillä jotka on pilvenkeveitä,
ellauri043.html on line 1368: Taivaallinen maa on yläpäässä, kuolevainen maa on alapäässä. Sitä kannattelee 2 enkeliä Spl enditenens ja 6-kasvoinen Omofori. (Elefantteja ei mainita, eikä kilpikonnia.)
ellauri043.html on line 1486: Sen (sielun?) muodosti seizemän pl anettahenkeä.
ellauri043.html on line 1846: Rauhottukaa, kyyhkyläiset! Ilman maallista eli pano-onneakin meillä on kivaa tälleen pl atonisesti. Isän ajan jälkeen tuli pojan vuoro, ja nyt mä ilmoitan jo kolmannen, Papukaijan ajan. (Kuiskaaja: ei parakeet vaan parakleet!) Korjaan Parakleetoxen. Sen ajovalot näky mun taustapeilissä niinä 40 karanteeniyönä kun taivaallinen Jerusalem loisti taivaanvahvuudessa, mun talon päällä Pepussa. (Kuiskaaja: Pepuza!) Korjaan Pepuzassa.
ellauri043.html on line 1928: Silloin koko basilikassa rieha tupl aantuu.
ellauri043.html on line 2155: Savilamput näiden kuvatusten alla heittää häilähtelevää valoa. Antonius, huomaa muurin raosta kuun, joka loistaa kaukaa maininkien päällä, ja se erottaa jopa pientä säännöllistä lipl atusta, ja laivan kölin soinnittoman äänen sen kolhiessa möljän kiviin.
ellauri043.html on line 2299: Etäämpänä maailman koronia symmetrisesti kerroxittain alimmasta joka ympäröi areenaa ylimpään, jossa kohoaa mastoja pitelemässä hyasinttipurjetta jota takilana tukee köysiverkko. Säteittän keskustaan laskeutuvat portaikot katkovat säännöllisin välein nää kivikehät. Niiden askelmat peittyvät kazojien pepun alle, kavaljeerien, senaattorien, solttujen, pl ebeijien, vestaalien ja kurtisaanien.
ellauri043.html on line 2505: Ne kertoo tarinoita marttyyreistänsä; tuska kohoaa, kippisvauhti tupl aantuu. Niiden kyynelten kastelemat silmät siirtyy tovereista toisiin. Ne änkyttävät humalaa ja yxinäisyyttä;
ellauri043.html on line 3375: Yx kännipää puhutteli meitä laulaen suloisella äänellä. Se oli Neron hautaruno (ei väliaivo), jolla oli valta nirhata jokainen joka kuunteli sitä huolimattomasti. Sillä oli selässä rasiasa 1 keisarin kitarasta otettu kieli. Mä sivuutin sen olankohautuxella. Se heitti meille lokaa päin pl äsiä. Silloin mä irrotin vyöni ja annoin sen sille käteen.
ellauri043.html on line 3939: Kahareisin lintujen päällä, kantotuoleihin kapaloituina, tönöttäen kultaistuimilla, ne matkustaa, unexii, käskee, juo viiniä, hengittää kukkia. Tanssijattaret pyörähtelee, jättiläiset jahtaa hirviöitä, yxinäiset meditoi luolien suuaukolla. Ei erota tähtiä silmäteristä, pilviä banderolleista, Riikinkukot ottaa juotavaa kultapölypuroista, paviljonkien koruommel sekottuu leobardien täpl iin, värilliset säteet risteäbvät sinisessä ilmassa lentävien nuolten kaa ja suizutusastioiden joita heilutetaan.
ellauri043.html on line 3969: Jumalten keskessä majailee tuulten henget, pl aneettojen, kuukausien, päivien, sata tuhatta muutakin! Ja ne on vaihtelevan näköisiä, niiden muutoxet on hyvin nopeita. Ja tuossa yxi joka muuttuu kalasta kilpikonnaxi, se ottaa villisian pään, kääpiön pituuden.
ellauri043.html on line 4740: Mä oon hakenut sitä kaikilta kanavilta ja kaikista järvistä — pl us kauempaakin, aina Foinikian Bybloxesta. Anubis pystykorva, pomppi mun ympärillä haukkua räksyttäen, ja tonki kuonollaan tamariinien kekoja. Kiitos, hyvä koirankuonolainen, kiitos! Hyvä poika!
ellauri043.html on line 4786: Coucoupha est empl oyé comme nom masculin singulier. Empl oyé comme nom. 1. dans l'Antiquité, en Égypte, animal mythique à longue oreilles figurant sur les sceptres des souverains. Quelques mots au hasard. Lisää henkiolentoja . In old pharmacy, a cucupha or cucufa was a cap, or cover for the head, with cephalic spices quilted in it, worn for certain nervous distempers, particularly those affecting the head. Saint Cucuphas is a martyr of Spain. His feast day is 25 July but in some areas it is celebrated on 27 July to avoid conflict with the important feast day of Santiago, the patron saint of Spain. His name is said to be of Phoenician origin with the meaning of "he who jokes, he who likes to joke."
ellauri043.html on line 5367: Näetkö tuolla, tosi kaukana, sumujen keskellä, ton blondipartaisen jttiläisen jolta putoo veren punaama miekka? Se on skyytti Zalmoxis, kahden pl aneetan välillä:
ellauri043.html on line 5400: couverte, et la dernière période accompl ie.
ellauri043.html on line 5500: Nona et Decima sairaanhoitajat, 3 kpl Nixii kätilöä, 2 imettäjää Educa et Potina, — ja Carna vauvanhoitaja, jonka orapihlajapuketti karkottaa vauvalta pahat unet.
ellauri043.html on line 5783: Ei kuulu mitään! Ei niin mitään... Ei edes siipien havinaa! Ja mä kun kurkotan kuullaxeni pl aneettojen yhteislaulua.
ellauri043.html on line 5862: Se muistaa halvexien entisten päiviensä tietämättömyyden, untensa keskinkertaisuuden. Tässä sillä sentään on lähellään nää valopallot joita se tihrusti alaalta! Se erottaa niiden liikeratojen risteyskohdat, niiden vektoreiden kompl exikomponentit. Se näkee ne tulossa kaukaa —.
ellauri043.html on line 5866: Se havaizee yhdellä silmäyxellä etelän ristin ja ison karhun, ilvexen ja kentaurin, kalojen tähtisumun, Orionin tähtikuvion 6 aurinkoa, Jupiterin 4 kirrtolaisineen, ja jättimäisen Saturnuxen 3-kertaisen renkaan! Kaikki pl aneetat, kaikki tähdet jotka ihmiset myöhemmin löytävät! Se täyttää silmänsä niiden valoilla, se ylitäyttää päänsä niiden välimatkalaskelmilla, — sit sen pää nuupahtaa.
ellauri043.html on line 6747: jotka muistuttaa saippuakupl ia joissa taittuu aurinko.
ellauri045.html on line 25: VEIKKO KANKKONEN play:none">Urheilulegendaa
ellauri045.html on line 123: att i rasande takt ta emot signaler och smäll på pl anen.
ellauri045.html on line 170: The so-called GAL-TAN scale has now become fashionable among political scientists to "compl ement" the traditional left-right scale with a new "scale" usually called the GAL-TAN scale. The capital letters here indicate the endpoints of the "scale" and they stand for Green-Alternative-Libertarian and Traditional-Authoritarian-Nationalist respectively.
ellauri045.html on line 197: Poliittisia suuntia tulee GAL-TAN nelikentässä 4kpl pl us keskusta, paizi Suomen keskusta on keskustasta koilliseen. Vihervät on kokkareiden puisto-osasto. Ruoz. on samma på svenska. Hemmetin oikeistolainen on ainaskin HBL. Krist. on mersumpi persuvariantti.
ellauri045.html on line 207: Joku serbi "huippututkija" on selvittänyt Herlinin Sanomille, että Suomen rikkaat on useammin kovapalkkaisia kuin vanhoissa pl utokratioissa. No sen selitys voi ihan yxinkertaisesti olla, että meillä on vanhaa rahaa vanhastaan ollut vähän. Muut pohjoismaat Ruozia lukuunottamatta on samassa seurassa, ja muutkin entiset Njeuvostoliiton satelliittimaat. Suomen uusrikkaat on entisiä lotuhousuja jotka tahkoo pätäkkää maxamalla toisilleen tähtitieteellisiä palkkoja. Jahka ne saa tarpeexi kokoon paalua niin eiköhän nekin ymmärrä että pääomaverotus on parempi suoja pesämunille. Homopl utia, ompa hieno sana, ja hieno nelikenttäkin, jossa pystyaxelilla kasvaa erituloisuus (gini) ja vaaka-axelilla pääomatulojen ja palkan suhde (ICF). Toimittaja ei ilmeisesti ymmärtänyt siitä pätkääkään. Se että mennään naimisiin omaan säätyyn ei ole uusi ilmiö, vaan paluuta vanhaan ja koettuun pelitapaan. Ehkä kohta taas saa romanttinen rakkaus jalansijaa, kun vääräuskoiset ja pikkukorvaiset ei enää pääse naimisiin jos ne joutuu eri kohdille pl utotaulukossa.
ellauri045.html on line 298: Narsistidipl omi on enää parin pisteen päässä.
ellauri045.html on line 324: Variety staff wrote that Saroyan’s “initial original screenpl ay is a brilliant sketch of the basic fundamentals of the American way of life, transferred to the screen with exceptional fidelity.” The New York Times critic Bosley Crowther chided the film for excessive sentimentality, saying it featured "some most maudlin gobs of cinematic goo."
ellauri045.html on line 328: Saroyan has been described by Stephen Fry (mixihän?) as "one of the most underrated writers of the century." Fry suggests that "he takes his pl ace naturally alongside Hemingway, Steinbeck and Faulkner."
ellauri045.html on line 351: Kaikki panot on mukavia, mutta Pissaliisalla on eniten tyyliä ja pätäkkää. Hannulle tuli kiire kertoa se Liisalle. Mut Liisakin ymmärtää hyvän päälle, on muuttanut wiixekkään dipl omaatin kanssa omakotitaloon Kulosaareen. Ei paljon nappaa slummailla maalla Hannun komennossa remontoitavassa velkaisessa kesämökissä. Halko on kuitenkin vaan halko, niinkuin halkio on halkio. Geenit jää häpeällisesti hopealle, meemit korjaa kultaa.
ellauri045.html on line 449: Hanska mulshero on pikku-uskonnollinen ja oikeistolainen kuten 70-luvun kaverinsa sikaniska insinööri Antti Tuuri. Antti Hyrystä puhumattakaan. Psska pl oki on täynnä suoltoa:
ellauri045.html on line 567: Мыслей и планов. ajatuxia ja pl äänejä.
ellauri045.html on line 712: Ketähän siro ystävämme Jesenin tässä pl agioi? Voisko se olla Rimbaud tai Oscar Wilde ? George Byron tai Musset Pigg? Näitä piisaa, kauniita päältä kakkuja, sisältä sulaa silkkoa. Sellainen joka ei hyväxy muita on tyytymätön izeensä, sanoo nettitohtori.
ellauri045.html on line 782: The tall, elegant lady with the dark, slightly veiled voice will be 70 next September. She is a scientist by training, as well as an expert in mathematics, economics and theology. She has rubbed shoulders and lower pl aces with an impressive number of Nobel laureates, and also happens to be a prolific essayist.
ellauri045.html on line 786: Her book Crossing was a New York Times Notable Book in 1999. Her latest books, The Bourgeois Virtues: Ethics for an Age of Commerce (2006) and Bourgeois Dignity: Why Economics Can't Expl ain the Modern World (2011), are parts of a four-volume "apology" for capitalism, of which she says: "I reckon this is why God put me on the pl anet. She thought, '"Hmm. We need an economist who is silly enough to try to unify the scientific and the humanistic sides. Oh, yeah: Deirdre.'"
ellauri045.html on line 806: Christianity added its own three others virtue, in St. Paul's words "faith, hope, and love, these three abide. But the greatest of these is love." The three are called "theological" or-flatteringly to Christianity, since we all know alleged Christians who in their xenophobia or homophobia or X-phobia do not practice them-"Christian" virtues. The three holy virtues smell of incense, but can be given entirely secular definitions, as the Peterson and Seligman volume does. Faith is the backward-looking virtue of having an identity, a pl ace from which one must in integrity start: you are a mother, a daughter, a wife, a schweitzer, a woman, a teacher, a reader, and would not think of denying them, or changing them frivolously. Hope, by contrast, is the forward-looking virtue of having a destination, a project. Where are you going? Quo vadis? If you are literally hopeless you go home tonight and use your military rifle (you are Swiss, so you have one) to shoot yourself. And love, the greatest of these, is the point of it all: love of husband/wife or both, love of country, love of art, love of science, love of God/dog or both.
ellauri045.html on line 850: Toni avaa näitä luokkia hieman narsistin näkökulmasta: Narsistit osaa kääntää päälle läsnaolon ja innoituxen ja viestivät taitavasti. Olemus on usein upea. Tosin Toniin sellainen ei vetoa. Miinusta narsisti saa izetunnosta, vaika muulta voikin vaikuttaa: izevarmuus vaihtuu salamannopeasti ärtymyxexi jos jengi ei pysy mukana. Narsistilla on hurjasti tunneälyä kun kyse on narsistin omista tunteista. Rohkeutta riittää koska muiden kohtalo ei arveluta. Ja ne on ihan aidosti omalla asiallansa. Narsistilla on siis karismaa ihan pyykkikorikaupalla. Voikin kysyä, voiko olla kunnolla karismaattinen olematta samalla aika kova narsisti. Narsistitestissä julkkisten pisteet oli suunnilleen tupl at tavisten pisteistä.
ellauri046.html on line 23: REIKÄRAUTA RENE play:none">Ruudinkatkuista
ellauri046.html on line 29: Reikärauta Rene on siitä kuuluisa, että sen suomensi mun kummitätini Sirkka Carlson. Mulla on siitä jonkunlainen pl ärä hyllyssä, josta kyllä puuttuu tää elzorromainen kovaxikeitetty kansilehti. Mixhän puolinakut naiset on kovaxikeitettyjä? Kai ne on käytetty monessa kuumassa liemessä.
ellauri046.html on line 47: On säälittävä epähistoriallinen pukudraama alaikäsille millenniaaleille, Game of Thrones siikveli. Ällöjä 2000-luvun juippeja pukukohtauxissa ällöillä 2000-luvun elkeillä. Ihan epäaitoja puhekupl ia ja sentimenttejä. Historiaa on muutettu niin että juoneen mahtuu kaikkia rotuja ja pystypanoa. Naiset on miesmäisempiä kuin miehet. Epsanjan kuningatar lähtee noin puolijoukkueen etunenässä käsikähmään hepan selässä Sierra Madren vuorilla kuin joku el Zorron Dona Carita. Muovisia digitoituja Westminstereitä. Halvan näköisiä kulisseja. Kummallista persu-mamu-brexitpelleilyä ylhäisaatelisten kesken. Pah koko Euroopan kuninkaalliset oli oikeesti kaikki vanhoja tuttuja ja lähisukulaisia. Neekereitä b-pääosissa ja mumslimeita et riittää jokaiselle jotakin. Oikeasti pikkupoika Harrystä oli tehty ello isoveljeä röyhkeämpi juippi joka leikkii miehekkäästi pyssyillä.
ellauri046.html on line 91: VIDEO
ellauri046.html on line 173: All the faithful Christian peopl e would like to see Christian emoji in their apps and devices
ellauri046.html on line 224: Søren Kierkegaard nedskrev ni år før sin død, hvordan hans grav skulle se ud. Det hele skulde tilsaas med lavt fint græs, kun skulde der i hvert Hjørne pl antes en lille busk af tyrkiske, mørkerøde Roser. Paa en Tavle, svarende til den, der laa paa Forældrenes Grav, skulde der ved siden af de to afdøde Søskendes Navne være Plads til hans Navn, og herunder skulde sættes med smaa Bogstaver følgende Vers af Brorson:
ellauri046.html on line 274: Keywords: academia; actors; assistant professors; banquets; baptism; behavioral change; clergy; Constantin Constantius; contradiction; costumes; day laborers; discipl es; earnestness; ethical existence; existence; finishing; freedom; Godthaab; Hegelian philosophy; horses; incommensurability; inwardness; lifelong tasks; love; male vulnerability; misunderstanding; money; Nicolaus Notabene; Philosophical Fragments; pl easure; professors; Quidam; Repetition; Socrates; suffering; talkativeness.
ellauri046.html on line 286: Söören pohtii vanhanaikaisesti Livets Betydningiä: se ei voi olla työnteko (mixei?), se ei voi olla (muiden) työn tulosten kulutus (mixei?), ei se voi olla kuoleminenkaan. Mites olisi nää kaikki pl us lastenteko, eli saman elämisen homman jatkuminen aina maailman tappiin? Mixei? Elämä on entelekiaa. Elämä on. Matti Nykänen on parempi filosofi kuin Söören.
ellauri046.html on line 354: Symparanekromenoi : Something like "the dead peopl e club" or "the community of the deceased"
ellauri046.html on line 369: Diapsalmata: I'd rather be a swineherd than a misunderstood poet. Peopl e are vapid, unreasonable, life is a trouble, I feel trapped, and bored. Alas, the door of fortune does not open inwards so that one can force it by charging at it. Business is silly. If the gods offered me a wish, I'd wish for laughter.
ellauri046.html on line 376: On The First Love: I keep on bumping into the pl ay 'First Love' by Eugène Scribe. It is really good.
ellauri046.html on line 399: Söde pani iskurepl iikit heti peliin. Kotiope Schlegel
ellauri046.html on line 526: Individ. Personlighed. Aethiker-Gymnastik. Det er overall en Dansepl ads for et Maenniske. Selv den ringeste Maenniske har sin. Det er denne Faegter-Dygdighed, denne Smidighed, der egentlig er er det udoedlige Liv i det Ethiske.
ellauri046.html on line 529: Söörenillä on väärä etymologia Pligtille. Ei se ole Paalaegg vaan frankkilaista alkuperää, samaa kuin pl edge, siis pantti. Etkö sinä muiista mitää sinää lupaasit? Mitäpä muuta tämä on kuin Dan Steinbockin sisäistetty herruus. Mut juutalaiset kuten Dan on sydämettömiä lakimiehiä. Eivät osaa rakastaa jumalaa eikä yhyä paljon izeään kuten kristityt. Aethiske Maenniske on det almene menniske, musketöörimäisesti yxi kaikkien ja kaikki yhden puolesta.
ellauri046.html on line 593: Vækkelsesbevægelsen var en modreaktion på de store ændringer i opl ysningstiden. I Danmark begyndte udskiftningerne på landet, skole- og kirkereformer blev sat i gang, og censur blev afskaffet.
ellauri046.html on line 617: "Bogens titel er umiddelbart appeli al sin kategoriskhed, men værket selv, især dets første del, er faktisk en langstrakt labyrint bestående af meget forskellige tekster, som de færreste formentligt læser i umiddelbar forlængelse af hinanden, men springer frem og tilbage imellem, hvad jeg sådan set også vil anbefale, ellers risikerer man bare at tabe pusten," siger Joakim Garff, før han selv kaster sig ud i en hæsblæsende sætningssolo om den kompl icerede komposition i første del af "Enten-Eller".
ellauri046.html on line 623: tinderlöytöön tai baarituttavuuteen. Ei ne optiot mitään tuhansien luokkaa nykyäänkään ole. Ellei pl ärää oikein hartiavoimin jotain senssipalstoja. Ja sieltäkin löytyy sitruunoita vaikka kuinka. Wikipedian sekavista selostuxista voi päätellä ettei toimittajatkaan ole oikeasti tajunneet tästä pätkääkään. Se voi johtua yxinkertaisesti siitä et Söören on ize oikeasti sekopää. Lopux se sanoo et tää on sun totuus (eli siis Sörkän, ei se koskaan kelleen muulle puhu). Vaihtoehtoinen sellainen, valize izellesi mieluinen. Enten tentten. Haarukka on puhunut.
ellauri046.html on line 631: No siis mix? Mikä on sen argumentti? Ei oikeen selviä mut Sörkan tuntien jotain kummaa. L’un des auteurs dramatiques les pl us joués du XIXe siècle, en France comme dans le reste du monde, Eugène Scribe a été élu à l’Académie française en 1834. La célébrité dont il a joui de son vivant contraste singulièrement avec l'oubli total dans lequel son œuvre est tombée de nos jours.
höpöhöpöä takuulla. Se on eri sairas epeli. Niinku ezen miälestä on hienoa et naiset on miehille alamaisia ja et synnytys on niille kipeää. Vitun ääliö.
ellauri046.html on line 735: Rukousten pl ot on anteexi kiitos ole hyvä. Krist. rukouxissa outoa on et ei oikeestaan saa pyytää yhtään mitään, jumala kuiteskin tietää paremmin mikä käy, eli tapahtukoon sun tahtos; mun sana olkoon yhtä mitätöin kuin sun on mitääntekemätöin. Mod Gud have vi altid uret, se on rakentava ajatus.
ellauri046.html on line 804: Arcadia displ ays but a region of dreams;
ellauri046.html on line 814: When age chills the blood, when our pl easures are past—
ellauri046.html on line 933: If you have any pl uck, kiss me!
ellauri047.html on line 18:
GOETHE 50+25 play:none">Jöötinvääntöä
ellauri047.html on line 789: Ei ollut lisenssiä tappaa, mutta oli hauska tappa J.W.Goethe Strasbourgissa, 5v sitä nuorempi juristinpl anttu, täysin epäakateeminen.
ellauri047.html on line 904: Tähdellisempi kymysys: Mix Eurooppa oli taas kerran uusi 1770-luvulla? Mitä oli tapahtunut? Teollinen vallankumous alkamassa. Maailmankauppa järistänyt rahalautan tasapainoa. Porvaristo nousukiidossa. Nehän ne luki näitä romanttisia pl äjäyxiä, esim Pamela. Säätymylläys oli taas menossa, porvarien nuoret apinat näki tilaisuuden tulleen. Tässä on siis puhe Fredrik Suurta seuraavasta polvesta, johon Goethe kuului, valistuxen ja vallankumouxen välisestä. Goethe oli väliinputoaja, ei perustanut kummastakaan.
ellauri047.html on line 1011: VIDEO
ellauri048.html on line 19: OPETTELE LUKEMAAN play:none">Laulurunoutta
ellauri048.html on line 249: vienyt makutuomarilta hajuaistia, on kirjapl oki nimeltä Kirjanurkkaus .
ellauri048.html on line 257: Ei sit enää yllätä, et tän pl okittajan aikuiskirjalempparit on Sinuhe ja Moby Dick. Humisevasta Harjusta ja Kurjista se oli tykännyt leffoina. Vähän taustoja:
ellauri048.html on line 404: mutta molemmista näistä pl agiaateista voi yhtä kaikki kokoavasti sanoa: ompa tylsiä.
ellauri048.html on line 513: ja sitä ympäröivästä kompl exista todellisuudesta. Pelkkää hyvyyttä
ellauri048.html on line 541: Parallels have been drawn between the "Lord of the Flies" and actual incident from 1965 when a group of 6 schoolboys who sailed a fishing boat from Tonga were hit by a storm and marooned on the uninhabited island of ʻAöö-ta, considered dead by their relatives in Nuku‘alofa. The group not only managed to survive for over 15 months but "had set up a small commune with food garden, hollowed-out tree trunks to store rainwater, a gymnasium with curious weights, a badminton court, chicken pens and a permanent fire, all from handiwork, an old knife blade and much determination". Dutch historian Rutger Bregman, writing about this situation said that Golding's portrayal was unrealistic. There has been no WW III yet, and kids killing other kids is entirely unheard of. Except a bunch of school killings in America and Finland, among other pl aces.
ellauri048.html on line 553: niinkuin mulla, enintään pl agioituja. Paljon toistoa
ellauri048.html on line 716: protagonists who are pl agued by paranoid fears of persecution by other men
ellauri048.html on line 721: privileging of manly pl easures and society
ellauri048.html on line 741: Anita worked and, while Saul tried to write, supported the family financially, something his father conveniently overlooked, Bellow says, after they spl it up and she had to chase him for alimony. "I was 20 before he became famous, so I did not grow up the son of a famous father. I grew up the son of a starving artist."
ellauri048.html on line 743: There followed the years of bohemia, when the family moved to Paris and Saul started to shrug off the influence of his 19th-century literary heroes and find his own voice in The Adventures of Augie March. When he was happy and the writing was going well, their lives would be joyous; when he struggled, the apartment was mired in gloom. Meanwhile, "Saul had women stashed all over town," writes his son. The pain of these recollections is secondary to Bellow's fury at what he calls his father's "self‑justification: that his career as an artist entitled him to let peopl e down with impunity." As an adult, when he asked his mother about it, she said, "I'm blessed with a poor memory."
ellauri048.html on line 747: Like what? "There were a lot of very unhappy peopl e at various points of his life, who felt maligned. Ex-wives high up there. Wives number two and three, Adam's mother and Daniel's took a whipping. My mother got off easy. I think he knew he did her wrong. At some point he said to me: 'I should never have divorced your mother.' I repl ied: 'Pop, how then could you have written Herzog?' And he said, 'I could have done it.'
ellauri048.html on line 837: From my study I see in the lampl ight, Työkkäristä nään mä kankeena
ellauri048.html on line 844: They are pl otting and pl anning together kertoo: kohta tulee vipinää,
ellauri048.html on line 895: VIDEO
ellauri048.html on line 926: Goethe pl ucks the flower although it tells him not to do so. He takes it to his house and pl ants it in his garden. He wants to tell us, viewers or readers, look how noble I am, he because he takes it home. He doesn't realize that by taking the flower home he is taking her wild life away and domisticating it in his factory (garden). In that he is not different from industrialists and peopl e who practise green house raising. It is like enslaving his flower and on top of that he wants to be appl auded and praised because he doesn't kill it. However, he does't listen to what his flower says: do not pl uck me or I will die.
ellauri048.html on line 932: I pl uck you out of the crannies, sut poimin rakosista pois,
ellauri048.html on line 997: Rode the six hundred. razasteli razuväki (600 kpl ).
ellauri048.html on line 1004: Theirs not to make repl y, Ei mokkerille kuulu väittää vastaan.
ellauri048.html on line 1076: EITHER they had to knuckle under and settle for a "sublimated", more-or-less disembodied, spiritualized passion . . . . OR they could pl unge and risk martyrdom. They must have agreed that they had no taste for martyrdom — or even Byronic exile. . . . It is clear they both knew, in their heart of hearts, they wanted to express their love for each other in a physical way; yes, even in a sexual way — Love and Duty is eloquent testimony to that. But both of them knew in the prevailing moral climate . . . there seemed to be no possibility of love between males that would not incur hysterical opposition. . . . There is not much doubt, had they wanted to take the sexual path and do so openly, they would only have wanted the kind of sex which they felt about each other.
ellauri048.html on line 1087: That he shouts with his sister at pl ay! Joka huhuilee leikkisiskoa!
ellauri048.html on line 1104: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1e/Arthur_Henry_Hallam_bust.jpg/330px-Arthur_Henry_Hallam_bust.jpg" />
ellauri048.html on line 1114: Hallam spent the 1830 Easter holidays with Tennyson in Somersby and declared his love for Emilia. Hallam and Tennyson pl anned to publish a book of poems together: Hallam told Mrs Tennyson that he saw this "as a sort of seal of our friendship". Hallam's father, however, objected, and Hallam's Poems was privately published and printed in 1830. In the summer holidays, Tennyson and Hallam travelled to the Pyrenees (on a secret mission to take money and instructions written in invisible ink to General Torrijos who was pl anning a revolution against the tyranny of King Ferdinand VII of Spain). In December, Hallam again visited Somersby and became engaged to Emilia. His father forbade him to visit Somersby until he came of age at twenty-one.
ellauri048.html on line 1116: In July 1833, Hallam visited Emilia. On 3 August, he left with his father for Europe. On 13 September, they went to Vienna, with Hallam compl aining of fever and chill. It was apparently a recurrence of the "ague" he had suffered earlier that year, and, although it would delay their departure to Prague, there seemed to be little cause for alarm. Quinine and a few days rest were prescribed. By Sunday 15th, Hallam felt sufficiently better to take a short walk with his father in the evening. When he returned to the hotel he ordered some sack and lay down on the sofa, talking cheerfully all the time. Leaving his son reading in front of the fire, his father went out for a further stroll. He returned to find Hallam still on the sofa, apparently asleep apart from the position of his head. All efforts to rouse him were in vain. Arthur Hallam was dead at the age of twenty-two.
ellauri048.html on line 1129: This stanza is to be found in Canto 27. The last two lines are usually taken as offering a meditation on the dissolution of a romantic relationship. However, the lines originally referred to the death of the poet's beloved friend. They are reminiscent of a line from William Congreve's popular 1700 pl ay, The Way of the World: "'tis better to be left than never to have been loved." What the fuck, this is an obvious homoerotic elegy.
ellauri048.html on line 1239: From out waste pl aces comes a cry, Valtavista paikoista kuuluu kiljahdus,
ellauri048.html on line 1264: Some pl easure from thine early years. Joku herkuttelu sun poikavuosilta,
ellauri048.html on line 1292: And common is the commonpl ace, Mut laahusmaista on toi tavanomaisuus,
ellauri048.html on line 1301: Who pl edgest now thy gallant son; Joka panit myyntiin reippaan poikasi;
ellauri048.html on line 1311: At that last hour to pl ease him well; joka puuhastelin viime hetkellä sen mielixi;
ellauri048.html on line 1327: And thinking `this will pl ease him best,' Ja ajatellen 'tästähän se tykkää eniten',
ellauri048.html on line 1369: And all the pl ace is dark, and all Ja koko paikka on pimeenä, ja kaikki
ellauri048.html on line 1372: So find I every pl easant spot Niin musta on kaikki kivat mestat
ellauri048.html on line 1387: But since it pl eased a vanish'd eye, Mut kerze oli hävinneen silmän mieleen,
ellauri048.html on line 1388: I go to pl ant it on his tomb, Mä aion istuttaa sen sen haudalle,
ellauri048.html on line 1394: Sailest the pl acid ocean-pl ains purjehdit pitkin meren ulapoita
ellauri048.html on line 1403: All night no ruder air perpl ex Koko yönä älköön rumempi ilma vaivatko
ellauri048.html on line 1455: Calm and still light on yon great pl ain Tyyni ja hiljainen valo tuolla pellolla
ellauri048.html on line 1491: And forward dart again, and pl ay Ja syöxähdän taas eteenpäin ja pelehdin
ellauri048.html on line 1500: Her pl ace is empty, fall like these; Et on vieruspaikka tyhjänä, tälleen putoo;
ellauri048.html on line 1530: Come stepping lightly down the pl ank, Tulevan ketterästi alas lankonkia,
ellauri048.html on line 1561: Athwart a pl ane of molten glass, Pitkin sulan lasin muodostamaa tasoa,
ellauri048.html on line 1571: And toppl es round the dreary west, Ja kaataa väsähtäneen lännen ympäri
ellauri048.html on line 1598: And mingles all without a pl an?
ellauri048.html on line 1635: And in the pl aces of his youth.
ellauri048.html on line 1655: They laid him by the pl easant shore,
ellauri048.html on line 1717: When more and more the peopl e throng
ellauri048.html on line 1737: Which led by tracts that pl eased us well,
ellauri048.html on line 1862: The heart that never pl ighted troth
ellauri048.html on line 1888: “Not once did the Polish Army depl oy cavalry against German tanks,” the embassy statement said. “This is pure Nazi and Communist propaganda that continues to weave its way into Western media reports to this very day.”
ellauri048.html on line 1893: Poles hate the myth because it cheapens what they actually did in the war. As war historian Ben Macintyre wrote: “The Polish contribution to Allied victory in the Second World War was extraordinary, perhaps even decisive, but for many years it was disgracefully pl ayed down, obscured by the politics of the Cold War.”
ellauri049.html on line 19: DISTANT HILLS play:none">Valitusvirsiä
ellauri049.html on line 62: Kaarlo Sarkia on vahingosta viisastunut. Kun kulta kysyy siltä mikä sai sut rakastamaan mua, se kiertää kysymyxen - on tosi vaarallista mennä antamaan tämmöisiin kysymyxiin seikkaperäisiä, vielä vähemmän totuudenmukaisia vastauxia. Se on niinkuin "näyttääx mun peppu isolta tässä?" johon on vain 1 mahdollinen vastaus - paizi siinä harvinaisemmassa tapauxessa, jossa kulzu ize asiassa kärsii peppunsa pienestä koosta. Tämäkin on vaan tiedettävä, jos ei tiedä niin on paras olla dipl omaattinen: "se näyttää juuri sopivalta kulta". Mut Tom of Finlandit yleensä kyllä peukuttaa pieniä peppuja (lähde?).
ellauri049.html on line 138: Uuno Kailas syntyi Heinolassa Kailasen ratsutilalla hämäläiseen talonpoikaissukuun. Kailas oli kaksivuotias pikkupoika, kun hänen äitinsä Olga Josefiina Salonen (o.s. Honkapää) kuoli. Isästä Johan Evert Salosesta ei ollut poikansa huolehtijaksi, joten tämä jäi isoäitinsä Maria Fredrikan vastuulle ja asui useissa sukulaisperheissä. Poika sai isoäidiltä ankaran uskonnollisen kasvatuksen, joka vaikutti häneen läpi koko elämän, ja sillä oli vaikutuksia myös runotuotantoon. Ankara uskonnollinen kasvatus on perseestä. Ankara kasvatus ja uskonnollinen kasvatus ovat erixeenkin perseestä, yhdistettyinä ne on tupl ahanurista.
ellauri049.html on line 297: Charles Pierre Baudelaire (lausunta ransk. [ʃaʁl bodlɛʁ]) (9. huhtikuuta 1821 Pariisi, Ranska – 31. elokuuta 1867 Pariisi) oli ranskalainen runoilija, kääntäjä, esseisti ja kriitikko. Hänen tunnetuin teoksensa on Les Fleurs du mal (suom. Pahan kukat, 2011). Baudelaireen liitetään usein käsite fin de siècle ('vuosisadan loppu'), ja hänet luetaan Edgar Allan Poen ja Théophile Gautierin ohella dekadenttien johtohahmoihin. Se oli niin dekadentti että valehteli kavereille olevansa homo. Jos valehteli. Ehkä se oli bi. Oli sillä tyttöystäviä ainakin, sekä pl atonisia että suuhunpantavia.
ellauri049.html on line 341: S’avançaient, pl us câlins que les Anges du mal, Eteni pahanilkisemmin kuin musta enkeli,
ellauri049.html on line 365: Etevä Baudelaire-tutkija Claude Pichois otaxuu, että Baudelaire lakkasi olemasta oma izensä jo vuoden 1862 jälkeen, jolloin se tunsi yllään mielipuolisuuden siipien havinan. On myönnettävä, että runoilijakaan ei ole immuuni fysiologisten kompl ikaatioiden vaikutuxelle. Lukijassa nousee vastarinta, hän kieltäytyy hyväxymästä kryptoniitin vaikutusta, hän ärtyy; hän kokee izensä runoilijaparan suojelijaxi. Mutta voi! Runoilija, siinä missä kuka tahansa muukin, on vain apina, joka on aina altis sairauden seurauxille. Baudelairen Belgia-viha on vain maniaa, jonka syfilixen eteneminen on aiheuttanut ja joka on juurtunut muutenkin kuluttavan elämän, lähinnä alkoholin, rappeuttamaan ruumiseen.
ellauri049.html on line 409: Je ne me sentis pl us guidé par les haleurs : ei mua enää ohjanneet Volgan lautturit,
ellauri049.html on line 419: Moi, l’autre hiver, pl us sourd que les cerveaux d’enfants, mä, toinen talvi, mykempi lasten aivoja,
ellauri049.html on line 421: N’ont pas subi tohu-bohus pl us triomphants. ei ole kärsineet voitokkaampaa mekkalaa.
ellauri049.html on line 440: Plus fortes que l’alcool, pl us vastes que nos lyres, vahvemmat kuin viina, isommat kuin viulut,
ellauri049.html on line 445: L’Aube exaltée ainsi qu’un peupl e de colombes, korkean sarastuxen kuin suvun puluja,
ellauri049.html on line 458: J’ai suivi, des mois pl eins, pareille aux vacheries Olen seurannut kuukausimäärin hyrskyjä
ellauri049.html on line 518: Mais, vrai, j’ai trop pl euré ! Les Aubes sont navrantes. Totta mooses, liikaa olen itkenyt! Sarastus
ellauri049.html on line 525: Un enfant accroupi pl ein de tristesse, lâche jolle lapsi laskee surumielisenä menemään
ellauri049.html on line 528: Je ne puis pl us, baigné de vos langueurs, ô lames, En saata enää, teidän vetelässä sylissä,
ellauri049.html on line 573: Et je pl eure ulisten.
ellauri049.html on line 662: Et froids, comme une source en pl eurs, de la pl us chaste: dem blauen kalten Blick der keuschern: dennoch spürte, kylmistä, sateenvarjosta tai kumisuojaimesta:
ellauri049.html on line 670: Qu'il disperse le son dans une pl uie aride, eh es den Ton verteilt in einem kargen Regen, jälkiäänityxenä aamuöiseen sateeseen.
ellauri049.html on line 716: C’est une mer, un Lac blême, maculé d’îles Se on meri, järvi kalpea, saarten täpl ittämä,
ellauri049.html on line 728: De soif et de pl aisir, et ceux-ci d’un pas lent, janosta ja mielihyvästä, leijonat tassuttaa
ellauri049.html on line 739: Et prolonge l’informe ampl eur de sa ramure ja kohottaa oxistonsa niskakuontaloa,
ellauri049.html on line 741: Mais qu’il empl it parfois d’un vague et long murmure. enintään nostattaa epämääräistä muminaa.
ellauri049.html on line 745: Sans relâche et sans fin, semble pl aner toujours ilman taukoa saati loppua, leijuu aina
ellauri049.html on line 820: Stable trésor, templ e simpl e à Minerve, Vakaa rahasäiliö, Minervan temppelin simppeliys,
ellauri049.html on line 828: Templ e du Temps, qu’un seul soupir résume, Ajan pyhäkkö, jonka alkaa 1 ainut huokaus,
ellauri049.html on line 844: Oisiveté, mais pl eine de pouvoir, toimettomuuden jälkeen, silti voimallisen,
ellauri049.html on line 852: Je te rends pure à ta pl ace première : Puhdistan sut paalupaikallesi!
ellauri049.html on line 870: Fermé, sacré, pl ein d’un feu sans matière, Kiinni, pyhitetty, täynnä aineetonta tulta,
ellauri049.html on line 872: Ce lieu me pl aît, dominé de flambeaux, tää paikka miellyttää mua soihtuineen,
ellauri049.html on line 878: Chienne spl endide, écarte l’idolâtre ! Loistelias narttu, karkoita kuvainpalvoja!
ellauri049.html on line 896: Tête compl ète et parfait diadème, Pää kokonaisena ja täydellisenä diadeeminä
ellauri049.html on line 904: Un peupl e vague aux racines des arbres puunjuurten epätarkkarajainen puuhiskansa
ellauri049.html on line 912: La larve file où se formaient des pl eurs. Toukka kulkee missä muodostuivat kyyneleet.
ellauri049.html on line 922: Qui n’aura pl us ces couleurs de mensonge jossa ei ole enää näitä valheen värejä,
ellauri049.html on line 947: Ma chair lui pl aît, et jusque sur ma couche, Sitä miellyttää mun liha, ja mun leposijalleni asti
ellauri049.html on line 1000: VIDEO
ellauri049.html on line 1006: Hyvä kirjailija ja menestynyt kirjailija on käsitteitä, jotka peittää vaan hyvin osittain toisiaan kuin Vennin diagrammin kaksi puhekupl aa. Miten se on mahdollista? No six tietysti, että lukijoistakin on valtaosa totaalisia moukkia, siis ihan pelkkiä pystyynnostettuja apinoita muovipukeissa.
ellauri049.html on line 1017: Tematiikka on 1-1 Amerikan ulkopolitiikka pahan Empiren eli Saxan/Njeuvostoliiton kukistuttua. Pahan vallan alla olleet pikkupl aneetat on nyt pika pikaa saatettava republiikin hännän alle, sillä izenäisyyttä tavoittelevat valtiot voi joutua taas jonkun uuden pahan alaisuuteen ellei niitä saada heti meikäläisen pahan valtaan. Just protecting our vital interests against rogue states. Suojelemme maamme elintärkeitä etuja roistovaltioissa, kuten meidän öljyä.
ellauri049.html on line 1019: Tän paskan diggarit haluu kuvitella olevansa jedimaistereita, supervoimat sormenpäissä, keekoilla julkkixena yleisön edessä joka antaa apl odeja. Mä en halua, mut mä oonkin narsisti. Se et on olevinaan erilainen kuin muut on narsismia. Se et vaan haluis olla erilainen kuin muut on normaalia. Kaikkihan on erilaisia, jopa uniikkeja. Sunday spesiaaleja. Turha luulo, yllättävän samixia on kaikki apinat. Simpanssien kanssa yhteisiä 98% geeneistä.
ellauri049.html on line 1038: JL Runeberg oli sarjarunkkari, avionrikkoja ja setämies. VA Koskenniemi ylistää sen rakkauskirjeitä jollekulle Emilielle niin pydeen, että ei voi välttyä epäilyxeltä, et VA näkee niissä oikeutuxen omille pikapanoille Huiskun tytärten keskuudessa. Mitähän Runkun alkuperäinen Fredrikan torttu oli tästä mieltä? Ehkä se oli lakannut piittaamasta. Ja Vienokin. No tähän löytyy uudempiakin lähteitä. Runkku on Suomen nuuskituin runoilija. Seuraavissa lainauxissa puhuu Wexi, joku Nalle "HS selvitti" Nyberg ja Panu Rajalan pl oki ristiin kuin oravat.
ellauri049.html on line 1060: Olisi luonnollisesti epäasiallista ja täysin aiheetontakin pohtia kysymystä, oliko Emilie Björkstén tämän suuren ja syvän, miehisen ritarillisen rakkauden arvoinen. Oli hänessä runsaasti sitä naisellisuuden ja nuoruuden irrationaalista viehätystä, joka täysin määrin riittää selittämään Runebergin kiintymyxen. Hänen omat runokokokeilunsa, vaikka ne ovatkin ilman varsinaista esteettistä arvoa, eivät millään tavoin puhu häntä vastaan ihmisenä ja naisena, joskin ne ehkä osoittavat, että luonto hänessä oli tullut liiankin tietoisexi izestään. Niinpä hän on ize hieman narkissosmaisesti tarkastellut omaa kuvaansa kirjoittaessan "Den nyckfulla"-runonsa säkeet. On kuitenkin muistettava, ettei Runeberg ymmärrettävistä syistä voinut antaa tunteilleen yhtä välitöntä julkista ilmaisua kuin Emilie. Mix vitussa? Hemmetin setämiehet, ihan samanlaisia kuin jamaikalaisen sokeripl antaasin orjanomistajaäijät, välillä bylsitään nättejä orjatyttöjä, välillä annetaan ruoskan soida. Koskenniemestäkin näkyy selvästi, että kristus on vaan globalisaation emoji kristillisyyden kyljessä, pääasia on länsimainen luottoluokitus.
ellauri049.html on line 1089: Suttung gömde mjödet i en kammare i klippan Hnitbjörg, där han bodde, och satte dottern Gunnlöd att bevaka det. Men i Asgård pl anerade Oden att stjäla mjödet.
ellauri049.html on line 1117: Tegnér var sysselsatt med arbetet på sitt största verk: Frithiofs saga i åratal. Oehlenschlägers Helge, möjligen även Fouqués Regner Lodbrok, var förebilder för den form av självständiga romanser som Tegnér valde. Dikten kom ut som följetång. I den sista romansen, "Försoningen", ligger diktens kärna; ett slags kristnad pl atonism inläggs där i Baldersmyten. De erotiska sångerna fullbordades först sedan Tegnér mottagit djupa intryck av två intagande kvinnor, fru Euphrosyne Palm (1796–1851) i Lund, som inspirerat bland annat "Grannskapet" och "Fågelleken", och friherrinnan Martina von Schwerin; förbittrade utfall mot kvinnokönet i Frithiofs saga tyder på att bakom den djupa besvikelse som bemäktigade sig Tegnér vid mitten av 1820-talet, låg även besvikelser på det romantiska området. Hihii hahaa taas yx narsistinen setämies. Martina oli nuorehkon skaldin puuma suojelija vapaaherratar ja Emili Selldin 19v piispan panopuu, josta sen oli sit pakko luopua:
ellauri049.html on line 1146: en rörlig själ, som gjorde själv sin pl åga vikkelä veitikka se oli, loi ize ikävyytensä,
ellauri050.html on line 22: FROZEN YOGHURT play:none">Jäähyväiset aseelle
ellauri050.html on line 114: Lootussiemenpäiväkirja-pl oki
ellauri050.html on line 191: I pl eaded, outlaw-wise, Mä turvauduin kuin henkipatto robbari,
ellauri050.html on line 231: Seems something, something that repl ies, on sitä jotain, joka vastaa mun tarpeeseen,
ellauri050.html on line 236: Their angel pl ucked them from me by the hair. niiden enkeli pelasti ne multa tukasta nostamalla.
ellauri050.html on line 288: Naked I wait Thy love’s upl ifted stroke! Nakuna mä odotan sun lemmen oikeata suoraa!
ellauri050.html on line 300: Have puffed and burst as sun-starts on a stream. ne on pullistuneet ja paxahtaneet kuin kupl at.
ellauri050.html on line 306: For earth with heavy griefs so overpl ussed. pitelemään näin ylistressaantunutta maata.
ellauri050.html on line 364: VIDEO
ellauri050.html on line 370: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/3f/Paramahansa_Yogananda_Standard_Pose.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri050.html on line 382: Resting pl ace Forest Lawn Memorial Park
ellauri050.html on line 392: Discipl es [show]
ellauri050.html on line 407: Paramahansa Yogananda (born Mukunda Lal Ghosh; January 5, 1893 – March 7, 1952) was an Indian monk, yogi and guru who lived his last 32 years in America. He introduced millions to the teachings of meditation and Kriya Yoga through his organization Self-Realization Fellowship (SRF) / Yogoda Satsanga Society (YSS) of India. A chief discipl e of the Bengali yoga guru Swami Sri Yukteswar Giri, he was sent by his lineage to spread the teachings of yoga to the West, to prove the unity between Eastern and Western religions and to preach a balance between Western material growth and Indian spirituality. His long-standing influence in the American yoga movement, and especially the yoga culture of Los Angeles, led him to be considered by yoga experts as the "Father of Yoga in the West." Jooga on lännessä suosittu naisten jumppamuoto, kun siinä ei hypitä niin että tissit hölskyy. Venytellään vaan kissamaisesti lattialla, ei tarvi hikoilla eikä välttämättä käydä jumpan päälle edes suihkussa, jos on kiire.
ellauri050.html on line 409: Yogananda was the first major Indian teacher to settle in America, and the first prominent Indian to be hosted in the White House (by President Calvin Coolidge in 1927); his early acclaim led to him being dubbed "the 20th century's first superstar guru," by the Los Angeles Times. Arriving in Boston in 1920, he embarked on a successful transcontinental speaking tour before settling in Los Angeles in 1925. For the next two and a half decades, he gained local fame as well as expanded his influence worldwide: he created a monastic order and trained discipl es, went on teaching-tours, bought properties for his organization in various California locales, and initiated thousands into Kriya Yoga. By 1952, SRF had over 100 centers in both India and the US; today, they have groups in nearly every major American city. His "pl ain living and high thinking" principl es attracted peopl e from all backgrounds among his followers.
Valtaosa amerikkalaisista pitää enemmän high living and pl ain thinking - vaihtoehdosta.
ellauri050.html on line 411: He published his book Autobiography of a Yogi in 1946 to critical and commercial acclaim; since its first publishing, it has sold over four million copies, with HarperSan Francisco listing it as one of the "100 best spiritual books of the 20th Century". Former Appl e CEO Steve Jobs had ordered 500 copies of the book for his own memorial, for each guest to be given a copy. The book has been regularly reprinted and is known as "the book that changed the lives of millions." A 2014 documentary, Awake: The Life of Yogananda, won multipl e awards at film festivals around the world.
Tästä viimeistään käy ilmi, että tää tuuba on täysin hanurista, todella syvältä. Mut hyvin vetää hindu ton taivaskoira-räpin.
ellauri050.html on line 414: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/79/Rainer_Maria_Rilke%2C_1900.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri050.html on line 513: einer mich pl ötzlich ans Herz: ich verginge von seinem ois äkkiä ottanut mut sydämelleen: mä uponnut oisin sen
ellauri050.html on line 608: pl ötzlich für immer enttrat, das Leere in jene äkkiä ainiaaxi astui, tyhjyys lähti
ellauri050.html on line 620: Tästä kohtaa tuli editoitua epähuomiossa bittiavaruuteen paasaus, jonka herätteenä oli Jamaican neekeriorjista kertova netflix-minisarja ja samaan aikaan Herlinin aviisissa uutisoitu New Yorkerissa ilmestynyt brittien ja jenkkien orjahääräilyä arvostellut numero. Hävinnyt paasaus oli olletikin paljon räväkämpi tuoreeltaan, mutta koitan nyt pelastaa mitä pelastettavissa on. Emotionaalista sisältöä siihen antoi se netflix-sarja, jossa entistä suorasukaisemmin näytettiin, millaisia hirtettäviä paskiaisia orjiansa ruoskivat ja hirttävät brittipl antaasin omistajat ize olivat. Hauska vinjetti oli että tyhmää pl antaasinomistajarouvaa näytteli sama mimmi kuin vähän aikaisemmin E.M. Forsterin Talon jalavan varjossa saksalainen hienostelija, joka nai siirtomaaherran "Only connect" tyyppisesti. Mimmi sopi molempiin osiin hirvittävän hyvin, sanan alkuperäisessä merkityxessä. Ei hemmetti, kaikki toi tollainen kulttuurikukoistus on vaan herravallan paskaläjän päällä kukkivaa loiskasvua.
ellauri050.html on line 622: Paizi pl antaasinomistajapaskiaisten kuvaus, hyvää minisarjassa oli myös päähenkilön Miss Julyn persoona. Käy selväxi, ettei kukaan apina ole pyhimys, jotkut vaan pääsee toteuttamaan paskamaisuuttansa muita paremmin, koska niillä on käsissänsä reviirit ja meemit. Kaikista niistä tulee samanlaisia paskiaisia kun olosuhteet parantuvat, ja samalla lailla kiltimpiä myös kun on oikein hyvät tai yhtä huonot olosuhteet, ettei tarvi kilpailla. Keskiluokka on pahin, nousukkaat ja laskukkaat. Termiittiapinoita, siitä ei vaan pääse mihinkään, juoxemassa samoja kuluneita polkuja.
ellauri050.html on line 624: Se toinen puoli tuohtumuxesta tuli oikeistolaisilta jenkkipaskiaisilta, jotka repi pelihousunsa kun neekeritoimittaja sanoi suoraan, että jenkkien niinkuin niiden vanhojen vastustajien brittien hegemonia oli rakennettu orjavoimalla, että se niiden paljon puhuttu demokratia oli samanlaista kuin se oli Kreikassa, eli koski vain ns. vapaita ns. miehiä, koko muu valtava konkkaronkka sai nuolla näppejänsä kazomossa. Ja että tää sisällissota, jonka nimellinen päämäärä oli vapauttaa orjia, oikeasti oli teollisen pohjoisen ja maatalousvaltaisen etelän riita työvoimasta. Niistä 12.5 miljoonasta mutiaisesta, jotka oli 200 vuioden aikana laivattu Afrikasta, joista kuoli 15% laivamatkalla. Pohjoisessa ei ollut pl antaaseja, eikä tehdastyövoimaa kannattanut enää panna kiinni kettingillä, paljon halvemmaxi tulee antaa niiden asua omalla kustannuxella murjuissa ja maxaa omat ruokansa ja pentunsa.
ellauri050.html on line 646: Mullon hyvä fantasia. Tommoset tunnepl äjäyxet syntyy y
ellauri050.html on line 945: Über Deukalions Flutschlamm, Peukalionin mutapl otussa.
ellauri050.html on line 1139: pl ötzlich, Yxkax,
ellauri051.html on line 25: BOOM play:none">Politiikkaa
ellauri051.html on line 37: Niitä voi ihailla jääkaapinseinästä, pl us kuvia ja taittoja.
ellauri051.html on line 135: Lao Rui: Siis puliveivarityyppisiä kankikaikkosia ja kopl aajia.
ellauri051.html on line 372: Come nearer, bodiless one--hapl y, in thee resounds Tule lähemmäxi, päätön -- ehkä sussa soi
ellauri051.html on line 373: Some dead composer--hapl y thy pensive life joku kuollut säheltäjä -- ehkä sun aivoelämä
ellauri051.html on line 428: --Nor war alone--thy fearful music-song, wild pl ayer, brings every -- Eikä vaan sota -- sun mielilaulu, hullu soittaja, tuo kaikki muutkin
ellauri051.html on line 435: O trumpeter! methinks I am myself the instrument thou pl ayest! 50 Hoi trumppifetisisti! must tuntuu että mä oon se soitettava soitin!
ellauri051.html on line 505: The world woke up this Friday to another pl easant surprise from, shall we say it again, the breezy Nobel laureate: a Whatman-esque tune aptly-titled “I Contain Multitudes.” Mitä helvettiä, toi onkin Whatmanin omakehusta, vaikka luin sen poikasena Callen Waldenista på svenska: "Motsäger jag mig? Gott, jag motsäger mig. Jag är stor, jag rymmer mångfalder."
ellauri051.html on line 562: 22 Echoes, rippl es, buzz'd whispers, love-root, silk-thread, crotch and vine, kaikuja, kareita, kuiskutuxia, lempijuuri, silkkilanka, munahaukka,
ellauri051.html on line 569: 27 The pl ay of shine and shade on the trees as the suppl e boughs wag, Valon ja varjon leikki puissa kun norjat oxat notkuvat,
ellauri051.html on line 593: 49 Sure as the most certain sure, pl umb in the uprights, well entretied, Varmaakin varmempi, vaaterissa, hyvin tuettu, kiinni
ellauri051.html on line 610: 61 Leaving me baskets cover'd with white towels swelling the house with their pl enty, jättää mulle valkoisella liinalla peitettyjä koreja talon runsaudensarvixi,
ellauri051.html on line 617: 67 Peopl e I meet, the effect upon me of my early life or the ward and city I live in, ketä mä tapaan, mun lapsuuden kokemusten merkitys tai kotikaupunki,
ellauri051.html on line 620: 69 My dinner, dress, associates, looks, compl iments, dues, Mun päivällinen, puku, kaverit, ulkonäkö, imartelu, palkinnot,
ellauri051.html on line 628: 76 Stands amused, compl acent, compassionating, idle, unitary, Seisoo huvittuneena, suopeana, säälivänä, laiskana, yhtenäisenä,
ellauri051.html on line 638: 84 Loafe with me on the grass, loose the stop from your throat, Malexi mun kaa ruoholla, irrota kupl a kurkusta,
ellauri051.html on line 643: 89 And parted the shirt from my bosom-bone, and pl unged your tongue to ja käänsit paidan mun pepulta, ja työnsit -hm- kielesi mun paljaaseen
ellauri051.html on line 673: 114 It may be you are from old peopl e, or from offspring taken soon out of Ehkä sä olet vanholta ihmisiltä, tai liian aikaisin vieroitetuilta lapsilta,
ellauri051.html on line 700: 137 I am the mate and companion of peopl e, all just as immortal and fathomless as myself, Mä olen ihmisten kamu ja kumppani, kaikki yhtä kuolemattomia ja pohjattomia kuin mä ize,
ellauri051.html on line 738: 169 The clear light pl ays on the brown gray and green intertinged, 169 Seijas valo sekoittaa ruskeen, harmaan ja vihreen sävyjä,
ellauri051.html on line 771: 196 And remember putting pl asters on the galls of his neck and ankles; 196 Ja muistakaa laittaa laastarit hänen niskansa ja nilkkojensa sappeihin;
ellauri051.html on line 783: 207 You spl ash in the water there, yet stay stock still in your room. 207 Roiskut siellä veteen, mutta pysyt silti huoneessasi.
ellauri051.html on line 789: 213 It descended tremblingly from their templ es and ribs. 213 Se laskeutui vapisena heidän temppeleistään ja kylkiluistaan.
ellauri051.html on line 801: 222 The lithe sheer of their waists pl ays even with their massive arms, 222 Heidän vyötärön notkeus leikkii jopa heidän massiivisilla käsivarsillaan,
ellauri051.html on line 803: 224 They do not hasten, each man hits in his pl ace. 224 He eivät kiirehdi, jokainen lyö paikallaan.
ellauri051.html on line 807: 227 His blue shirt exposes his ampl e neck and breast and loosens over his hip-band, 227 Hänen sininen paitansa paljastaa hänen laajan kaulan ja rintansa ja löystyy hänen lantionauhansa yli,
ellauri051.html on line 820: 240 And acknowledge red, yellow, white, pl aying within me, 240 Ja tunnusta punaisen, keltaisen, valkoisen leikkivän sisälläni,
ellauri051.html on line 829: 248 Find its purpose and pl ace up there toward the wintry sky. 248 Etsi sen tarkoitus ja sijoita sinne ylös kohti talvista taivasta.
ellauri051.html on line 847: 265 The carpenter dresses his pl ank, the tongue of his forepl ane whistles its wild ascending lisp, 265 Puuseppä pukee lankkunsa, hänen etulentokoneen kieli viheltää villi nousevaa huuliaan,
ellauri051.html on line 874: 292 As the deck-hands make fast the steamboat the pl ank is thrown for the shore-going passengers, 292 Kun kansikädet nopeuttavat höyrylaivaa, lankku heitetään rannalla matkustaville,
ellauri051.html on line 885: 303 The bride unrumpl es her white dress, the minute-hand of the clock moves slowly, 303 Morsian purkaa valkoisen mekkonsa, kellon minuuttiosoitin liikkuu hitaasti,
ellauri051.html on line 887: 305 The prostitute draggles her shawl, her bonnet bobs on her tipsy and pimpl ed neck, 305 Prostituoitu raahaa huiviaan, hänen konepeltinsä roikkuu näppylässään ja näppylässään,
ellauri051.html on line 893: 311 The Missourian crosses the pl ains toting his wares and his cattle, 311 Missourilainen ylittää tasangot kantaen tavaransa ja karjansa,
ellauri051.html on line 898: 316 Seasons pursuing each other the pl ougher pl oughs, the mower mows, and the winter-grain falls in the ground; 316 Vuodenajat takaavat toisiaan kyntäjä auraa, niittokone niittää ja talvivilja putoaa maahan;
ellauri051.html on line 918: 335 A Southerner soon as a Northerner, a pl anter nonchalant and hospitable down by the Oconee I live, 335 Etelämaalainen kuin pohjoinen, välinpitämätön ja vieraanvarainen istuttaja Oconeen rannalla, jossa asun,
ellauri051.html on line 927: 344 A learner with the simpl est, a teacher of the thoughtfullest, 344 Oppija yksinkertaisimman kanssa, ajattelevimman opettaja,
ellauri051.html on line 933: 350 Breathe the air but leave pl enty after me, 350 Hengitä ilmaa, mutta jätä paljon minun jälkeeni,
ellauri051.html on line 934: 351 And am not stuck up, and am in my pl ace. 351 Ja en ole jumissa, vaan olen paikallani.
ellauri051.html on line 935: 352 (The moth and the fish-eggs are in their pl ace, 352 (Koi ja kalanmunat ovat paikallaan,
ellauri051.html on line 936: 353 The bright suns I see and the dark suns I cannot see are in their pl ace, 353 Kirkkaat auringot, joita näen, ja tummat auringot, joita en näe, ovat paikallaan,
ellauri051.html on line 937: 354 The palpable is in its pl ace and the impalpable is in its pl ace.) 354 Kosketeltava on paikallaan ja kosketeltava on paikallaan.)
ellauri051.html on line 947: 362 I pl ay not marches for accepted victors only, I pl ay marches for conquer'd and slain persons. 362 En soita marsseja vain hyväksyttyjen voittajien puolesta, soitan marsseja valloitetuille ja tapetuille.
ellauri051.html on line 984: 397 I wear my hat as I pl ease indoors or out. 397 Käytän hattuani niin sisällä kuin ulkona.
ellauri051.html on line 988: 401 In all peopl e I see myself, none more and not one a barley-corn less, 401 Kaikissa ihmisissä näen itseni, ei enempää eikä ohraa vähemmän,
ellauri051.html on line 999: 412 (I reckon I behave no prouder than the level I pl ant my house by, after all.) 412 (Luulen, että en käyttäydy yhtään ylpeämmin kuin sillä tasolla, jolle istutan taloni.)
ellauri051.html on line 1008: 421 And I know the ampl itude of time. 421 Ja minä tiedän ajan ampl itudin.
ellauri051.html on line 1011: 423 The pl easures of heaven are with me and the pains of hell are with me, 423 Taivaan nautinnot ovat kanssani ja helvetin kivut ovat kanssani,
ellauri051.html on line 1032: 444 Far-swooping elbow'd earth -- rich appl e-blossom'd earth! 444 Kaukaa vajoavaa kyynärpäätä maata -- rikasta omenakukkimaa!
ellauri051.html on line 1071: 481 It alone is without flaw, it alone rounds and compl etes all, 481 Se yksin on viaton, se yksin kiertää ja täydentää kaiken,
ellauri051.html on line 1072: 482 That mystic baffling wonder alone compl etes all. 482 Tuo mystinen hämmentävä ihme yksin tekee kaiken.
ellauri051.html on line 1086: 496 And beat the gong of revolt, and stop with fugitives and them that pl ot and conspire. 496 Ja lyö kapinan gongia ja lopeta pakolaisia ja niitä, jotka juonittelevat ja tekevät salaliittoa.
ellauri051.html on line 1126: 535 Root of wash'd sweet-flag! timorous pond-snipe! nest of guarded dupl icate eggs! it shall be you! 535 Pesty makean lipun juuri! pelottava lampi-taivaaja! vartioitujen kaksoismunien pesä! se olet sinä!
ellauri051.html on line 1128: 537 Trickling sap of mapl e, fibre of manly wheat, it shall be you! 537 Tihkuvaa vaahteran mehua, miehisen vehnän kuitua, se olet sinä!
ellauri051.html on line 1170: 578 I crowd your sleekest and best by simpl y looking toward you. 578 Yhdistän tyylikkäimmät ja parhaat puolesi katsomalla sinua kohti.
ellauri051.html on line 1172: 580 I carry the pl enum of proof and every thing else in my face, 580 Kannan todistusten määrää ja kaikkea muuta kasvoillani,
ellauri051.html on line 1181: 588 Talkative young ones to those that like them, the loud laugh of work-peopl e at their meals, 588 Puhuvia nuoria niille, jotka pitävät heistä, työläisten äänekäs nauru aterioillaan,
ellauri051.html on line 1187: 594 The slow march pl ay'd at the head of the association marching two and two, 594 Hidas marssi soitti yhdistyksen johdossa marssi kaksi ja kaksi,
ellauri051.html on line 1189: 596 I hear the violoncello, ('tis the young man's heart's compl aint,) 596 Kuulen sellon soiton, (tämä on nuoren miehen sydänvalitus,)
ellauri051.html on line 1217: 622 My flesh and blood pl aying out lightning to strike what is hardly different from myself, 622 Minun lihani ja vereni lyövät salaman iskemään siihen, mikä tuskin eroaa minusta,
ellauri051.html on line 1230: 635 They have left me helpl ess to a red marauder, 635 He ovat jättäneet minut avuttomaksi punaiselle ryöstäjälle,
ellauri051.html on line 1273: 675 In vain the pl utonic rocks send their old heat against my approach, 675 Turhaan pl utoniset kivet lähettävät vanhaa kuumuuttaan lähestymistäni vastaan,
ellauri051.html on line 1283: 684 I think I could turn and live with animals, they are so pl acid and self-contain'd, 684 Luulen, että voisin kääntyä ja elää eläinten kanssa, ne ovat niin rauhallisia ja omatoimisia,
ellauri051.html on line 1292: 693 They bring me tokens of myself, they evince them pl ainly in their possession. 693 He tuovat minulle merkkejä itsestäni, he osoittavat, että ne ovat selvästi hallussaan.
ellauri051.html on line 1302: 703 Limbs glossy and suppl e, tail dusting the ground, 703 Raajat kiiltävät ja taipuisat, häntä pölyttelee maata,
ellauri051.html on line 1305: 706 His well-built limbs tremble with pl easure as we race around and return. 706 Hänen hyvin rakennetut raajat vapisevat ilosta, kun kiipeämme ympäriinsä ja palaamme.
ellauri051.html on line 1324: 724 Where the alligator in his tough pimpl es sleeps by the bayou, 724 Missä alligaattori kovissa näppyissään nukkuu lahden rannalla,
ellauri051.html on line 1326: 726 Over the growing sugar, over the yellow-flower'd cotton pl ant, over the rice in its low moist field, 726 Kasvavan sokerin yllä, keltakukkaisen puuvillakasvin päällä, riisin päällä sen matalakostealla pellolla,
ellauri051.html on line 1330: 730 Over the dusky green of the rye as it rippl es and shades in the breeze; 730 Rukiin hämäränvihreyden yli, kun se aaltoilee ja varjostaa tuulessa;
ellauri051.html on line 1354: 754 At appl e-peelings wanting kisses for all the red fruit I find, 754 Omenankuorilla toivoen suudelmia kaikille punaisille hedelmille, joita löydän,
ellauri051.html on line 1369: 769 Where the spl ash of swimmers and divers cools the warm noon, 769 Missä uimareiden ja sukeltajien roiske viilentää lämpimän keskipäivän,
ellauri051.html on line 1374: 774 Pleas'd with the native and pl eas'd with the foreign, pl eas'd with the new and old, 774 Tyytyväinen alkuperäiseen ja tyytyväinen vieraaseen, tyytyväinen uuteen ja vanhaan,
ellauri051.html on line 1379: 779 Looking in at the shop-windows of Broadway the whole forenoon, flatting the flesh of my nose on the thick pl ate glass, 779 Katson sisään Broadwayn ikkunoihin koko iltapäivän, litistäen nenäni paksua lasia vasten,
ellauri051.html on line 1395: 795 Storming, enjoying, pl anning, loving, cautioning, 795 Myrskyä, nauttia, suunnitella, rakastaa, varoittaa,
ellauri051.html on line 1401: 801 My course runs below the soundings of pl ummets. 801 Kurssiini kulkee jyrkänteiden äänien alapuolella.
ellauri051.html on line 1406: 806 I go hunting polar furs and the seal, leaping chasms with a pike-pointed staff, clinging to toppl es of brittle and blue. 806 Menen metsästämään napaturkiksia ja hylkeitä, hyppien kuiluja hauenkärkisellä sauvalla, takertuen hauraisiin ja sinisiin latvoihin.
ellauri051.html on line 1408: 808 I take my pl ace late at night in the crow's-nest, 808 Otan paikkani myöhään illalla variksen pesässä,
ellauri051.html on line 1409: 809 We sail the arctic sea, it is pl enty light enough, 809 Purjehdimme arktisella merellä, se on tarpeeksi valoisaa,
ellauri051.html on line 1411: 811 The enormous masses of ice pass me and I pass them, the scenery is pl ain in all directions, 811 Valtavat jäämassat ohittavat minut ja minä ohitan ne, maisema on tasainen joka suuntaan,
ellauri051.html on line 1464: 864 The cries, curses, roar, the pl audits for well-aim'd shots, 864 Huudot, kiroukset, karjunta, kiitosta hyvin kohdistetuille laukauksille,
ellauri051.html on line 1467: 867 The fall of grenades through the rent roof, the fan-shaped expl osion, 867 Kranaattien putoaminen vuokrakaton läpi, viuhkamainen räjähdys,
ellauri051.html on line 1489: 888 Some made a mad and helpl ess rush, some stood stark and straight, 888 Jotkut ryntäsivät hulluna ja avuttomana, jotkut seisoivat jyrkästi ja suorana,
ellauri051.html on line 1490: 889 A few fell at once, shot in the templ e or heart, the living and dead lay together, 889 Muutama kaatui kerralla, ammuttiin temppeliin tai sydämeen, elävät ja kuolleet makasivat yhdessä,
ellauri051.html on line 1503: 901 His was the surly English pl uck, and there is no tougher or truer, and never was, and never will be; 901 Hänen oli äreä englantilainen kynä, eikä ole olemassa kovempaa tai todenmukaisempaa, eikä ole koskaan ollut eikä tule olemaankaan;
ellauri051.html on line 1560: 956 My face is ash-color'd, my sinews gnarl, away from me peopl e retreat. 956 Kasvoni ovat tuhkanväriset, jänteeni kiemurtelevat, ihmiset vetäytyvät pois minusta.
ellauri051.html on line 1573: 968 The grave of rock multipl ies what has been confided to it, or to any graves, 968 Kalliohauta moninkertaistaa sen, mikä sille on uskottu, tai kaikkiin haudoihin,
ellauri051.html on line 1575: 970 I troop forth repl enish'd with supreme power, one of an average unending procession, 970 Minä lähden täydennettynä korkeimmalla voimalla, yhtenä keskimääräisestä loputtomasta kulkueesta,
ellauri051.html on line 1589: 983 Behavior lawless as snow-flakes, words simpl e as grass, uncomb'd head, laughter, and naivetè, 983 Käyttäytyminen laitonta kuin lumihiutaleet, sanat yksinkertaiset kuin ruoho, kampaamaton pää, nauru ja naiivi,
ellauri051.html on line 1606: 999 I am not to be denied, I compel, I have stores pl enty and to spare, 999 Minulta ei saa kieltäytyä, minä pakotan, minulla on kauppoja runsaasti ja ylimääräistä,
ellauri051.html on line 1634: 1026 Magnifying and appl ying come I, 1026 Suurennus ja soveltaminen tulen minä,
ellauri051.html on line 1639: 1031 In my portfolio pl acing Manito loose, Allah on a leaf, the crucifix engraved, 1031 Salkussani asettamalla Manito irti, Allah lehdelle, krusifiksi kaiverrettu,
ellauri051.html on line 1651: 1043 By the mechanic's wife with her babe at her nippl e interceding for every person born, 1043 Mekaanikon vaimo vauvan kanssa nännissä rukoilee jokaisen syntymän puolesta,
ellauri051.html on line 1655: 1047 What was strewn in the ampl est strewing the square rod about me, and not filling the square rod then, 1047 Mitä ylenpalttisesti levitettiin levittäen neliömäistä sauvaa ympärilleni, eikä täyttänyt sitten neliömäistä sauvaa,
ellauri051.html on line 1675: 1066 Ever the old inexpl icable query, ever that thorn'd thumb, that breath of itches and thirsts, 1066 Aina se vanha selittämätön kysymys, aina se piikkipeukalo, se kutina ja jano,
ellauri051.html on line 1682: 1073 Many sweating, pl oughing, thrashing, and then the chaff for payment receiving, 1073 Monet hikoilevat, kyntävät, puskevat ja sitten akanat maksun vastaanottamiseksi,
ellauri051.html on line 1687: 1078 The little pl entiful manikins skipping around in collars and tail'd coats, 1078 Pienet runsaat nuket, jotka hyppäävät ympäriinsä kauluksissa ja hännäntakkeissa,
ellauri051.html on line 1689: 1080 I acknowledge the dupl icates of myself, the weakest and shallowest is deathless with me, 1080 Tunnustan itseni kaksoiskappaleet, heikoin ja matalin on kuolematon kanssani,
ellauri051.html on line 1699: 1090 The black ship mail'd with iron, her mighty guns in her turrets -- but the pl uck of the captain and engineers? 1090 Musta laiva postitetaan raudalla, sen mahtavat aseet torneissaan – mutta kapteenin ja insinöörien ryöstö?
ellauri051.html on line 1725: 1115 How the flukes spl ash! 1115 Kuinka flukes roiskuvat!
ellauri051.html on line 1728: 1118 I take my pl ace among you as much as among any, 1118 Otan paikkani teidän keskuudessanne yhtä paljon kuin muidenkin,
ellauri051.html on line 1745: 1134 It is time to expl ain myself -- let us stand up. 1134 On aika selittää itseni -- nouskaamme ylös.
ellauri051.html on line 1754: 1143 That which fills its period and pl ace is equal to any. 1143 Se, mikä täyttää aikansa ja paikkansa, on yhtä suuri kuin mikä tahansa.
ellauri051.html on line 1759: 1148 I am an acme of things accompl ish'd, and I an encloser of things to be. 1148 Olen saavutettujen asioiden huippu ja tulevien asioiden kotelo.
ellauri051.html on line 1779: 1168 All forces have been steadily empl oy'd to compl ete and delight me, 1168 Kaikkia voimia on käytetty tasaisesti täydentämään ja ilahduttamaan minua,
ellauri051.html on line 1796: 1184 And all I see multipl ied as high as I can cipher edge but the rim of the farther systems. 1184 Ja kaikki, mitä näen, on moninkertaistunut niin korkealle kuin voin salata, paitsi kaukaisten järjestelmien reuna.
ellauri051.html on line 1834: 1221 And I said to my spirit When we become the enfolders of those orbs, and the pl easure and knowledge of every thing in them, shall we be fill'd and satisfied then? 1221 Ja minä sanoin hengelleni, kun meistä tulee noiden pallojen suojuksia ja mielihyvää ja tietoa kaikista niistä, olemmeko silloin täyttyneet ja tyytyväisiä?
ellauri051.html on line 1844: 1231 Long have you timidly waded holding a pl ank by the shore, 1231 Kauan olet peloissasi kahlaanut lankkua kädessäsi rannalla,
ellauri051.html on line 1855: 1241 First-rate to ride, to fight, to hit the bull's eye, to sail a skiff, to sing a song or pl ay on the banjo, 1241 Ensiluokkainen ratsastaa, taistella, lyödä häränsilmää, purjehtia skiffillä, laulaa laulua tai soittaa banjolla,
ellauri051.html on line 1867: 1253 The nearest gnat is an expl anation, and a drop or motion of waves a key, 1253 Lähin sääski on selitys, ja aaltojen pisara tai liike avain,
ellauri051.html on line 1873: 1259 The farm-boy pl oughing in the field feels good at the sound of my voice, 1259 Maatilapoika, joka kynsi pellolla, tuntuu hyvältä ääneni kuultaessa,
ellauri051.html on line 1890: 1275 And there is no trade or empl oyment but the young man following it may become a hero, 1275 Eikä kauppaa tai työtä ole, mutta sitä seuraavasta nuoresta miehestä voi tulla sankari,
ellauri051.html on line 1933: 1316 Perhaps I might tell more. Outlines! I pl ead for my brothers and sisters. 1316 Ehkä kerron lisää. Ääriviivat! Rukoilen veljieni ja siskoni puolesta.
ellauri051.html on line 1935: 1318 It is not chaos or death -- it is form, union, pl an -- it is eternal life -- it is Happiness. 1318 Se ei ole kaaosta tai kuolemaa - se on muoto, liitto, suunnitelma - se on iankaikkinen elämä - se on onnea.
ellauri051.html on line 1950: 1331 The spotted hawk swoops by and accuses me, he compl ains of my gab 1331 Munahaukka lentää ohi ja valittaa mun läppää
ellauri051.html on line 1965: 1345 Missing me one pl ace search another, 1345 Jossen löydy yhestä paikasta ezi toisesta,
ellauri051.html on line 3266: Quand il la retrouva pl us pâle kun se löysi lintusensa kalpeena
ellauri051.html on line 3284: Pour chauffer un coeur pl us glacé lämmittämään jäätyneempää sydäntä
ellauri051.html on line 3298: Et que je ne reverrai pl us ja jota mä en enää nää.
ellauri052.html on line 24: SINUN VUOTESI 1952 play:none">Tyyylsäää
ellauri052.html on line 62: Although it is unclear whether Henderson has truly found spiritual contentment, the novel ends with an optimistic and upl ifting note. Henderson learns that a man can, with effort, have a spiritual rebirth when he realizes that spirit, body and the outside world are not enemies but can live in harmony. And he doesn't really need his family for anything, he is enough for himself.
ellauri052.html on line 64: A week before the novel appeared in book stores, Saul Bellow published an article in the New York Times titled “The Search for Symbols, a Writer Warns, Misses All the Fun and Fact of the Story.” Here, Bellow warns readers against looking too deepl y for symbols in his piece of shit. This has led to much discussion among critics as to why Bellow warned his readers against searching for symbolism just before the symbol-packed Rain King hit the shelves. Because there ain't any, its just Solomon's idea of fun and fact. The ongoing philosophical discussions and ramblings between Henderson and the natives, and inside Henderson's own head, prefigure elements of Bellow's next novel Herzog, which includes many such inquiries into life and meaning. And which is an even worse piece of narcissisim than this one.
ellauri052.html on line 66: As in all Bellow's novels, death figures prominently in Henderson the Rain King. Also, the novel manifests a few common character types that run through Bellow's literary works. One type is the Bellovian Hero, often described as a schlemiel. Eugene Henderson, in company with most of Bellow's main characters, can be given this description, in the opinion of some peopl e, and Bellow was another one himself for sure. Another is what Bellow calls the "Reality-Instructor"; in Henderson the Rain King, King Dahfu fills this role. In Seize the Day, the instructor is pl ayed by Dr. Tamkin, while in Humboldt's Gift, Humboldt von Fleisher takes the part.
ellauri052.html on line 68: Scholars such as Bellow biographer James Atlas and others have shown that quite a few passages and ideas were lifted from a book titled The Cattle Compl ex in East Africa (1926) written by Bellow's anthropology professor Melville Herskovits who supervised his senior thesis at Northwestern University in 1937. What a schtekl, to steal from his own professor.
ellauri052.html on line 89: Harold Bloom is right to dismiss Bellow’s female characters of the later novels as “third-rate pipe dreams.” When a reader, holding Humboldt’s Gift in his hands, looks back at Augie March, the journey Saul Bellow has taken in his depiction of peopl e is a very sad one. There is no way to compare the daring, principl ed Mimi Villars, Augie March’s one equal in oration, to the simpl e Ramona (Herzog), or to the comically shallow Renata (Humboldt’s Gift). Where is a woman equal to Augie’s Thea in these later books?
ellauri052.html on line 91: And the male cast goes on a similar, if less marked, decline. Cantabile in Humboldt’s Gift is a hilariously manic pl ot device, but as an individual he no offers no comparison at all to the volcanic ambitions, peculiar code of honour, and suicidal longings of Simon, Augie March’s elder brother.
ellauri052.html on line 95: This falling away of the world then renders the interpl ay of thought and reflection a sterile joke, as whatever the main character finally decides, there is no outside world for his deliberations to have meaning. Bellow has little choice, in the world of raging shadows he creates, other than to step away from the quest of thought at the climactic moment, and pretend he was only kidding.
ellauri052.html on line 99: Eli Salella ei ole muuta pointtia kuin keskipiste, ize Sale. Jos jaxaa lukea n kpl kirjoja Salesta sen oman kalansilmälinssin läpi julkkisuran eri vaiheissa, niin siitä vaan. Mitä äveriäämpi ja vanhempi Salesta tulee sitä oikeistokonservatiivimpi. Sale nauraa rumasti kuin räkättirastas koko matkan pankkiin.
ellauri052.html on line 101: ploads/2018/11/AP_97041705426-e1543461052586.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri052.html on line 104: Bellow’s most merciless and eviscerating tormenter was his third wife, Susan Glassman, who defeated him in a long, acrimonious and expensive divorce suit. In 1974, after he had fraudulently misrepresented his projected income, the court, hostile to a successful Jewish intellectual, “ordered him to pay Susan $2,500 a month in alimony, backdated to 1968, pl us $600 a month child support, pl us lawyers’ fees.” Ignoring his own lawyer’s sound advice to settle the case, he surrendered to a self-destructive impulse, continued to appeal and deliberately prolonged his agony.
ellauri052.html on line 114: The highly discipl ined fellow devoted almost every morning to the sacred writing hours from nine to one.
ellauri052.html on line 171: The novel, which Bellow initially intended to be a short story, is a roman à clef about Bellow's friendship with the poet Delmore Schwartz. It expl ores the changing relationship of art and power in a materialist America. This theme is addressed through the contrasting careers of two writers, Von Humboldt Fleisher (to some degree a version of Schwartz) and his protégé Charlie Citrine (to some degree a version of Bellow himself).
ellauri052.html on line 173: Koulupoikana Salen Charles Citrine -ego lääppi jalkahoitajan kaunista tytärtä ja luki puistossa Platoa, Wordsworthia, Swinburnea ja Un coeur simpl e ä. 2 ekaa on punnittu ja köykäsixi havaittu. Entäs ne 2 muuta? Toi ranskis on Flaubertin novelli jossa uskonnollinen palvelustyttö rukoilee täytettyä papukaijaa. Pointti on et ihan sama mitä rukoillaan, rukoileminen on silti apinasta ihanaa, se on vähän kuin vetäs käteen. Sama näkemys kuin Saint Antoinessa. Entäs Swinburne?
ellauri052.html on line 193: Salella on tupl ahukki Chicagosta antropoloogiassa ja sosiologiassa. Se on grad school dropout Wisconsinista. Sen ns professuuri Chicagon Committee of Social Thoughtissa oli feikki, kyseessä on farmiliigan yliopiston aikanaan kekkaama julkkiskärpäspaperi. Oikeest se oli aina vähän nolo tosta keskilännen taustasta, kerskui sillä kuin Hyvinkään kultahattu. Se kerskuu Jenkkilän pahimmilla puolilla kuin Wilt Whatman.
ellauri052.html on line 195: Citrine on surullinen 8v tyttärensä puolesta koska se on ohutnenäinen ja laiha. Sale näet pitää enemmän pl umpeista. Sale on vastenmielinen kaikilla kriteereillä. Se diggaa Platoa koska se ei voi uskoa et tää on nyt tässä. Pitäis olla jotain hienompaa, sille ainakin. Saul on hurjan tarkka nokintajärjestyxistä ja badgeista. Tyypillinen keskiluokan nousukas, selvä snobi. Hyvin herkkänahkainen ja mielistelyn perään. Pikku gangsteri jää kuin tikku paskaan kun Saul avaa sanaisen arkkunsa. Se on sentään oikeasti julkkis. Yhtä nopea kuin Asael. Abner saisi työntää keihäänsä sen peräpäähän.
ellauri052.html on line 206: The central ton of every pl ace,
ellauri052.html on line 237: Displ ayed the stillness in which buildings stand,
ellauri052.html on line 250: Bubbled and whistled, so! Perpl exed, still wet
ellauri052.html on line 311: Journals contain numerous trivial details, which bear ampl e witness to the "pl ain living and high thinking" of the Wordsworth household—and, in this edition, sampl es of these details are given—but there is no need to record all the cases in which the sister wrote, "To-day I mended William's shirts," or "William gathered sticks," or "I went in search of eggs," etc. etc. In all cases, however, in which a sentence or paragraph, or several sentences and paragraphs, in the Journals are left out, the omission is indicated by means of asterisks. Nothing is omitted of any literary or biographical value.
ellauri052.html on line 319: Like other successful duos, such as Batman & Robin, Mickey & Goofy, or Laurel & Hardy, Wordsworth and Coleridge were temperamentally dissimilar. Wordsworth, reserved and thoughtful, wrote verse while pl odding to and fro in the garden and, we are told, was subject to stomach trouble when revising. Coleridge was irresponsible and debt-ridden, but everywhere spoken of as a genius, if a volatile one. “I think too much for a Poet,” he said. His addiction to opium began early and was never conquered. In time, it became his only regular habit.
ellauri052.html on line 334: Böhme oli luterilainen suutari, joka asui ja työskenteli synnyinkaupungissaan Görlitzissä Itä-Saksassa. Hänellä oli nuoruudessaan mystisiä näkyjä ja kokemuksia, jotka huipentuivat vuonna 1600 näkyyn. Näky tuli hänen kertomansa mukaan valokeilassa, joka paljasti maailman hengellisen rakenteen ja hyvän ja pahan välisen suhteen. Kymmenen vuotta myöhemmin tullut toinen näky kirvoitti Böhmen kirjoittamaan ja julkaisemaan useita esseitä, joissa näkyy Paracelsuksen ja muiden uuspl atonistien ja alkemistien vaikutus. Böhme pysyy kuitenkin lujasti kiinni kristillisessä perinteessä.
ellauri052.html on line 399: Bot lang owre a' the pl ay wer pl ayd,
ellauri052.html on line 443: Das Ziel der Menschheit liegt nach Nietzsche nicht in der Zukunft oder im allgemeinen Wohlergehen der derzeit bestehenden Gattung, sondern in den immer wieder auftretenden „höchsten Exempl aren“, eben den Übermenschen. Aus dieser philosophischen Position resultiert seine Ablehnung der „idealistischen“ Interpretation des Übermenschen und die positive Einschätzung gerade von immoralistischen und nach Größe strebenden Machtmenschen wie Alkibiades, Julius Cäsar, Cesare Borgia oder Napoléon Bonaparte.
ellauri052.html on line 463: A number of foreign and medieval analogues exist that exhibit the motif ("Whittington's cat" motif, N411.2), where the hero obtains wealth by selling a cat, typically in a rodent-infested pl ace direly in need of one. The tale is catalogued Aarne–Thompson (AT) tale type 1651, "Whittington's Cat".
ellauri052.html on line 493: In his novella Death in Venice, Thomas Mann hails the "Sebastian-Figure" as the supreme emblem of Apollonian beauty, that is, the artistry of differentiated forms; beauty as measured by discipl ine, proportion, and luminous distinctions. Juu tähän Tompan Venezian seikkailuun Sale vinkkaa myös. Hizi mikä sanaristikko on Salella tässä homostelun peittona. Täähän on kuin Proustin Albertine ja Gilbertine. Mafioso törkkää Salen sykkivään punanahkasisuxiseen autoonn takapuolesta. Polly on pelkkää hämäystä, statisti niinkuin Sepen nuolenreijät paikannut leski Irene tai Lemminkäisen äiskä.
ellauri052.html on line 499: In On Liberty, A Few Words on Non-Intervention , and other works, he defended British imperialism by arguing that a fundamental distinction existed between civilized and barbarous peopl es.
ellauri052.html on line 558: By 1907, a spl it between Steiner and the Theosophical Society became apparent. While the Society was oriented toward an Eastern and especially Indian approach, Steiner was trying to develop a path that embraced Christianity and natural science.
ellauri052.html on line 561: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/00/Steiner_mit_Annie_Besant.jpg/418px-Steiner_mit_Annie_Besant.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri052.html on line 567: The spl it became irrevocable when Annie Besant, then president of the Theosophical Society, presented the child Jiddu Krishnamurti as the reincarnated Christ. Steiner strongly objected and considered any comparison between Krishnamurti and Christ to be nonsense; many years later, Krishnamurti also repudiated the assertion.
ellauri052.html on line 576: In a number of works, Steiner described a path of inner development he felt would let anyone attain comparable spiritual experiences. In Steiner's view, sound vision could be developed, in part, by practicing rigorous forms of ethical and cognitive self-discipl ine, concentration, and meditation. In particular, Steiner believed a person's spiritual development could occur only after a period of moral development.
ellauri052.html on line 588: Antroposofit on tosi siveitä, sip sip, söp söp. Bylsikö Rudi koskaan ketään? He refrained from sex. But he was a man on another level
, sanoo joku uskovainen. Toinen sanoo: Steiner said very little about sexuality (just as he never expl ained to anthroposophists how to screw in a light bulb, which is why there is no answer to the question of: "How many anthroposophists does it take to screw in a lightbulb?")
.
ellauri052.html on line 591: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/8/84/Representative_of_humanity.gif" width="50%" />
ellauri052.html on line 597: He was a man who convinced and hypnotized not only others but himself. He seemed to possess a number of characters which he changed like masks as the need arose, now he was a benevolent pastor … now a magician holding sway over human souls … His sole purpose and aspiration was to obtain possession of all things from below, by his own titanic devices, and to break through by a passionate effort to the realm of the spirit… He may have possessed oratorical gifts, but he lacked the true gift and feeling for words. His speech was a kind of magical act, aimed at obtaining control over his hearers by means of gestures, by raising and lowering his voice, and by changes in the expression of his face. He hypnotized his discipl es, some of whom even fell asleep.
ellauri052.html on line 655: There were two Krishnamurtis. One was the persona presented to the world through lectures and books; a man without ego who led a sanctified life of celibacy and high moral purity. The other Krishnamurti was a shadowy, self-centered, vain man, capable of sudden angers and enormous cruelty to friends. He was also a habitual liar. Krishna, as his friends called him, freely admitted his compulsive lying. He blamed it on simpl e fear of having his deceptions detected.
ellauri052.html on line 657: After learning about Krishnamurti's secret love affair with his best friend's wife, Bohm felt betrayed. Perhaps this pl unged him into his third and final deep depression. Hospitalized, suffering from paranoia and thoughts of suicide, Bohm underwent fourteen episodes of shock therapy before he recovered sufficiently to leave the mental hospital. Earlier tripl e bypass surgery on his heart had been successful, but his death in 1991, at age 75, was from a massive heart attack. Krishnamurti had died six years earlier, at his home in Ojai, of pancreatic cancer. His body was cremated.
ellauri052.html on line 677: T.E. was born out of wedlock in August 1888 to Sarah Junner, a governess, and Thomas Chapman, an Anglo-Irish nobleman. Chapman left his wife and family in Ireland to cohabit with Junner. Chapman and Junner called themselves Mr and Mrs Lawrence, the surname of Sarah's likely father; her mother had been empl oyed as a servant for a Lawrence family when she became pregnant with Sarah.
ellauri052.html on line 690: Oxfordin akateemikko Howard Puhelinkoppi väittää että D.H. Lawrence kokeili homosexiä vaan päästäxeen kirjailijan pl okista, ei sixettä se olis ollut siitä kivaa. Edelllinen kirjoittaja Kinky Weekes oli väittänyt että se lakkasi yrittämästä 1917, mutta puhelinkoppi väittää että yrityxet jatkui vielä 20-luvulla. Aika monesta tälläsestä suspektistä häiskästä sanotaan että niitä kiinnosti tabu enemmän kuin ize suklaa. Kunnes se sitten tuomizi koko asian. Happamia sanoi kettu pihlajanmarjoista. Mut tämmöiset pätkät puhuvat äänekkäästi puolestaan:
ellauri052.html on line 693: I left myself quite limpl y in his hands, and, to get a better grip of me, he put his arm round me and pressed me against him, and the sweetnesS of the touch of our naked bodies one against the other was superb. It satistied in some measure the vague indecipherable yearning of my soul; and it was the same with him. When he had rubbed me all warm, he let me go, and we lo0ked at each other with eyes of
ellauri052.html on line 712: `Bring a coupl e of sandwiches and a syphon,' he said to the man, `and then don´t trouble me any more tonight -- or let anybody else.'
ellauri052.html on line 721: Good, I believe. I am no judge. He was very quick and slippery and full of electric fire. It is a remarkable thing, what a curious sort of fluid force they seem to have in them, those peopl e not like a human grip -- like a polyp --
ellauri052.html on line 742: Gerald fastened the door and pushed the furniture aside. The room was large, there was pl enty of space, it was thickly carpeted. Then he quickly threw off his clothes, and waited for Birkin. The latter, white and thin, came over to him. Birkin was more a presence than a visible object, Gerald was aware of him compl etely, but not really visually. Whereas Gerald himself was concrete and noticeable, a piece of pure final substance.
ellauri052.html on line 748: So the two men began to struggle together. They were very dissimilar. Birkin was tall and narrow, his bones were very thin and fine. Gerald was much heavier and more pl astic. His bones were strong and round, his limbs were rounded, all his contours were beautifully and fully moulded. He seemed to stand with a proper, rich weight on the face of the earth, whilst Birkin seemed to have the centre of gravitation in his own middle. And Gerald had a rich, frictional kind of strength, rather mechanical, but sudden and invincible, whereas Birkin was abstract as to be almost intangible. He impinged invisibly upon the other man, scarcely seeming to touch him, like a garment, and then suddenly piercing in a tense fine grip that seemed to penetrate into the very quick of Gerald´s being.
ellauri052.html on line 752: So the two men entwined and wrestled with each other, working nearer and nearer. Both were white and clear, but Gerald flushed smart red where he was touched, and Birkin remained white and tense. He seemed to penetrate into Gerald´s more solid, more diffuse bulk, to interfuse his body through the body of the other, as if to bring it subtly into subjection, always seizing with some rapid necromantic fore-knowledge every motion of the other flesh, converting and counteracting it, pl aying upon the limbs and trunk of Gerald like some hard wind. It was as if Birkin´s whole physical intelligence interpenetrated into Gerald´s body, as if his fine, sublimated energy entered into the flesh of the fuller man, like some potency, casting a fine net, a prison, through the muscles into the very depths of Gerald´s physical being.
ellauri052.html on line 756: At length Gerald lay back inert on the carpet, his breast rising in great slow panting, whilst Birkin kneeled over him, almost unconscious. Birkin was much more exhausted. He caught little, short breaths, he could scarcely breathe any more. The earth seemed to tilt and sway, and a compl ete darkness was coming over his mind. He did not know what happened. He slid forward quite unconscious, over Gerald, and Gerald did not notice. Then he was half-conscious again, aware only of the strange tilting and sliding of the world. The world was sliding, everything was sliding off into the darkness. And he was sliding, endlessly, endlessly away.
ellauri052.html on line 766: Birkin heard the sound as if his own spirit stood behind him, outside him, and listened to it. His body was in a trance of exhaustion, his spirit heard thinly. His body could not answer. Only he knew his heart was getting quieter. He was divided entirely between his spirit, which stood outside, and knew, and his body, that was a pl unging, unconscious stroke of blood.
ellauri052.html on line 772: Then he relaxed again to the terrible pl unging of his heart and his blood.
ellauri052.html on line 797: `Certainly it is,' said Gerald. Then he laughed pl easantly, adding: `It's rather wonderful to me.' He stretched out his arms handsomely.
ellauri052.html on line 809: `Yes. You have a northern kind of beauty, like light refracted from snow -- and a beautiful, pl astic form. Yes, that is there to enjoy as well. We should enjoy everything.'
ellauri052.html on line 815: `Perhaps. Do you think this pl edges anything?'
ellauri052.html on line 867: Leader (se elämäkerturi) defines Bellow’s recurrent themes as “the relative claims of life and work, the intensity of childhood experience, sexual insecurity.” He could have added Jewish life and identity, the perils of matrimony and the defects of modern civilisation. The highly discipl ined fellow devoted almost every morning to the sacred writing hours from nine to one. Sale ostettiin loppupeleissä Chicagosta Bostoniin. Jasu ja Sale kehu izeään varmaan kilpaa BU:n kekkereissä.
ellauri052.html on line 879: Muu maailma on kaikki "those terrorists". Treatening our legitimate vital interests everywhere. The last time I troubled to read the newspaper I noted that an oil company, after paying a ransom of $10M, was still unable to obtain the release of one of its executives from his Argentine kidnappers. C'est beaucoup d'argent pour un Americain. The flabbiness of the U.S.A. is disheartening. We are setting the world a miserable exampl e by allowing ourselves to be bullied.
ellauri052.html on line 898: Salen siteeraamasta Samuel Danielista 1562-1619, elisabetinaikaisesta naamiaisnaamareita väsänneestä muusikon pojasta ja kamariherrasta tämän verran: The 1911 edition of the Encyclopædia Britannica says of him: "His style is full, easy and stately, without being very animated or spl endid; it is content with level flights. As a gnomic writer Daniel approaches Chapman, but is more musical and coherent. He lacks fire and passion, but he has scholarly grace and tender, mournful reverie." Enempi kanan lentoa.
ellauri052.html on line 902: Humboldtin lahja onkin oikeasti Salen oma sepustus josta tulee kassamagneetti ja jättimenestys. Kaikista hienointa elämässä on "pl easing hundreds of thousands, millions of spectators". Ja ansaita paljon paljon rahaa.
ellauri052.html on line 905: Sitä mä vaan en tajua mix vainajan apinavirkaveljen syönti olis syntiä. Tarkottaaxe pl agiaattia, jonkun kuolleen kolleegan juttujen pl agiointia? Mitä pahaa siinäkään muka on? Sehän on vaan kapitalistista vedätystä eikö niin? Eikö niin?
ellauri052.html on line 920: Renata tarkoittaa uudelleensyntymää. Aina vaan tätä pl atonismia. Ei se ole muuta kun narsistin hirmuista kuolemanpelkoa. Vanhana Sale oli kuolla syötyään Karibialla raakaa kalaa. Sillä kertaa selvis kiitos vaimon nro 5. Vähän myöhemmin kuoli sittenkin taju kankaalla ja syntyi varmaan uudestaan täinä tai iiliäisenä.
ellauri052.html on line 936: Ultimately, much of the book revolves around a perceived opposition between “young Saul,” the politically radical, amorously multitasking free spirit who raised him, and “old Saul,” the reactionary, race-baiting friend of authority and Allan Bloom who occupied his father’s body for its final 40 years. Greg had a front-row seat for Bellow’s supposed conversion, after the rise of black power and the Six Day War, to the unfashionable conservatism that remains the unspoken reason his books aren’t read much in America today. He is thus well-pl aced to describe how that change—dramatically evident in Mr. Sammler’s Planet (1970), the neo-con novel par excellence, but also in Herzog—manifested itself in private.
ellauri052.html on line 944: It may be helpful to note here that Bellow’s fame, already growing after The Adventures of Augie March, expl oded after the publication of Herzog in 1964—the same year Daniel, his youngest son, was born. By the time the newly rich writer, urged by his third wife, moved into a fancy co-op on Lake Michigan, Greg already possessed enough of what he thought were his own opinions to dislike the white pl ush carpets, the 11 rooms “filled with fancy furniture and modern art.” Reminding the reader he was “raised by a frugal mother and a father who had no steady income,” Greg says that he “found the trappings of wealth in their new apartment so repellent that I compl ained bitterly to Saul,” who repl ied that he didn’t care about the new shiny things so long as he could still write—which he could. “As I always had, I accepted what he said about art at face value,” Greg admits, but he stopped visiting the new pl ace. After the marriage deteriorated and Saul moved out, 3-year-old Daniel, in the words of ex-child-therapist Greg, “took to expressing his distress” by peeing on the carpets. “I have to admit that the yellow stains on them greatly pl eased me,” Greg writes—for once showing off the Bellovian touch.
ellauri052.html on line 948: His good looks, exciting mind, sharp wit and exalted reputation were catnip to the ladies, whom he easily captured but could not control. Though not cut out for marriage, he had five wives and divorced the first four. One of his three sons expl ained, “He liked being taken care of. He liked beautiful, intelligent, spirited women. He didn’t like being bored.” Except in the arse.
ellauri052.html on line 950: Only his last wife, Janis Freedman, who was 43 years younger, redeemed his marital failures and fulfilled his expectations. Plain and pl iant, Canadian, Jewish and well-educated, she devoted her life to Bellow. She became his amanuensis, household major domo, surrogate parent, guardian of the flame and mother of his child when the biblical patriarch was 84. Hiljaiset ja halukkaat, ketterät ja kurvikkaat, sellaiset me haluaisimme. Jasu ja Jörkka yxissä kansissa.
ellauri052.html on line 962: He portrayed his ex-wives, before and after they divorced him, as they declined from goddess to devil. Their sexual betrayals and financial extortions suppl ied the mother lode of his fictional material and generated the misogyny and guilt that fueled his creative powers. He exalted his fourth wife, the Gentile Romanian mathematician Alexandra Tulcea, as the “translucent Minna gazing at the stars” in The Dean’s December and crucified her as the “ferocious, chaos-dispensing Vela” in Ravelstein.
ellauri052.html on line 969: Bellow’s most merciless and eviscerating tormenter was his third wife, Susan Glassman, who defeated him in a long, acrimonious and expensive divorce suit. In 1974, after he had fraudulently misrepresented his projected income, the court, hostile to a successful Jewish intellectual, “ordered him to pay Susan $2,500 a month in alimony, backdated to 1968, pl us $600 a month child support, pl us lawyers’ fees.” Ignoring his own lawyer’s sound advice to settle the case, he surrendered to a self-destructive impulse, continued to appeal and deliberately prolonged his agony.
ellauri052.html on line 972: know whether she was sleeping with Bellow yet; “they were all pl acing bets.” She started an affair with Bellow’s friend Jack Ludwig (the prototype for Gersbach in Herzog) only after she learned of her husband’s many infidelities.
ellauri052.html on line 992: Muu maailma on kaikki "those terrorists". Treatening our legitimate vital interests everywhere. The last time I troubled to read the newspaper I noted that an oil company, after paying a ransom of $10M, was still unable to obtain the release of one of its executives from his Argentine kidnappers. C'est beaucoup d'argent pour un Americain. The flabbiness of the U.S.A. is disheartening. We are setting the world a miserable exampl e by allowing ourselves to be bullied.
ellauri052.html on line 1002: Sale janoaa päästä paasaamaan Renatalle Goethesta. Thought is a real constituent of being, he tried to continue. Charlie! Not now! said Renata. Peopl e of strong intellect never are quite sure whether or not it's all a dream. Hemmetti mikä höperö. Mutta ilkeä ja rahantunteva.
ellauri053.html on line 24:
2 kanaa play:none">Jyviä ja akanoita
ellauri053.html on line 61: 26. syyskuuta – Kuvanveistäjä Lauri Leppäsen muotoilema Eino Leinon patsas paljastettiin Espl anadin puistossa Helsingissä.
ellauri053.html on line 123: Berkeley, Hume, Kant, Fichte, Hegel, James, Bergson all are united in one earnest attempt, the attempt to reinstate man with his high spiritual claims in a pl ace of importance in the cosmic scheme.
ellauri053.html on line 161: Empl oyé comme pigment, les bitumes donnent des teintes brunes très foncées.
ellauri053.html on line 163: On trouve du bitume un peu partout dans le monde, notamment aux Moyen et Proche-Orient où il est expl oité depuis quatre millénaires ; il était utilisé par exempl e pour calfater les bateaux en Mésopotamie, en Inde, en Égypte, en Phénicie.
ellauri053.html on line 165: Pline l'Ancien mentionne pl usieurs gisements : « Le bitume approche du soufre ; c'est tantôt un limon, tantôt une terre. Un limon, sortant d'un lac de Judée. Une terre, en Syrie, autour de la ville maritime de Sidon. Dans ces deux états, il s'épaissit et se condense. Il y a aussi un bitume liquide, témoin celui de Zacynthe et celui qu'on apporte de Babylone ; ce dernier bitume est blanc. Le bitume d'Apollonie est liquide aussi. Tous portent en grec le nom de pissasphalte, comme qui dirait mélange de poix et de bitume ». C'est l'origine des noms de spalt et d'asphalte.
ellauri053.html on line 167: Dans la première moitié du XIXe siècle les peintres français vont en faire un empl oi très fréquent. La texture laquée et la tonalité d'un roux très sombre intéressent des peintres comme Prud'hon qui l'utilise dans son tableau La Justice et la Vengeance divine poursuivant le Crime, et il sert avec excès jusqu'à Gustave Courbet. Les artistes l'utilisent abondamment soit en glacis pour les ombres, soit en couche épaisse pour les apl ats des fonds. L'usage d'une couleur chaude pour les ombres et les fonds apparaît alors comme une nouveauté remettant en question la doctrine courante qui voulait que les ombres et les lointains soient bleuâtres (froids).
ellauri053.html on line 169: On s'aperçoit au bout de quelques années que le bitume, empl oyé en quantité, peut dégrader les peintures. Composé d'un mélange d'hydrocarbures qui sont tous des solvants les uns des autres, il migre dans les couches voisines s'il n'est pas isolé par un vernis à la gomme-laque (PRV1, p. 258). Son empl oi en épaisseur détériora irrémédiablement un nombre important de tableaux de cette période, en faisant gercer les couches picturales, et en produisant des craquelures.
ellauri053.html on line 179: E.Saarinen kehu kukoistussyöttipl okissa Aarnen tutkielman Puovon lyriikasta ihan kupl ixi. Säntäs kirjakauppaan ostamaan samat Puovon paxut kootut runot kuin oli Aarnella, kun se vanhuxena väsäs nää arvostelut. Olix Puovo edes enää elossa? 2018, ei kai. Puovo veti paukuttamansa henxelit 2008, 77 vuotiaana. AK syntyi vuotta aikasemmin ja kuolee myöhemmin, se vietti 90-vuotispäivää äskettäin. Ketkäs muut teki niin? Ainiin runoilija Metastaasi ja sitä ihaillen siteeraillut Jean-Jacques. Paizi osat ovat vaihtuneet! Ihailija eli lyhyemmin kuin ihailtu, söikin paremmin. Josmä jostain syystä jäisin henkiin Eskin jälkeen mä olisin sen Aarne Kinnunen, en sen Metastaasi, vanha etäpesäke. Eski olisi Jeesus, puukonhaava mahassa, mä sen veli Peeveli, ex-telttailija.
ellauri053.html on line 181: Sevverra kiinnosti et lainasin Viikin kirjastosta Puovon paxut ja Aarnen laihemman tulkintapokkarin. Se on olevinaan Puovon runollusten ensyklopedia. Anssi Yli-Jyrä sano 50v-päivänään, et pipl iakonkordanssit on paxumpia kuin ize pipl ia. No tää ei kyllä oo. Aarne on keskittynyt nähtävästi vain tähdellisimpään sisältöön. Jättänyt mielestään paskemmat pukerruxet vaille mainintaa. Raamatun kanssa sellainen peli ei vetele, kun koko kirja on samaa inspiroitua jumalan sanaa. (Italo Calvino kertoo tapauxen, jossa Muhammed torkahtaa kesken sanelun ja lause jää puolitiehen. Kirjuri jatkoi lausetta omasta päästä. Se meni Muhammediin täydestä. Kirjuri menetti uskonsa kirjaimelliseen ilmoituxeen.)
ellauri053.html on line 203: Eskin kirjapl okissa oli siis tämä merkintä: Lukenut tätä kimaltelevaa, uloshengittävää kirjaa viime viikot sukellustekniikalla, uiden hetken sen kirkkaudessa. Raikastuneena palaten arkiryskeisiin. Kinnunen avaa Haavikon kautta ja oman syvällisen ymmärrysmaailmansa kautta kielen, merkitysrakentumisen, reflektion aarrearkkuja. "Runon kieli sallii puhua myös ilman teemaa ja teesiä olematta silti mieletöntä." - Lukukokemuksen majesteetillisuutta ja lähestyttävyyttä lisää tekijän valitsema erinomainen tekniikka: joka sivulla hän lainaa Haavikkoa havainnollistaakseen näkökulmiaan ja valaisevuuksiaan. - Siinä mitassa innostuin, että äsken kävin Fredrikinkadun Nide-kirjakaupassa noutamassa Haavikon Kootut runot (864 sivua).
ellauri053.html on line 207: Mä luin Puovosta (ja vähän Puovoakin) elämä ja teoxet tyyliin joku vuosi sitten, luin mm. Heikki Haavikon isän apoteoosin, ja Puovon korppikotkien kirjoittaman muisteluxen vanhan juopon viimeisistä vuosista. Siltä meni litra viiniä latkimalla päivässä vielä vuoteenomana. Mutta ei siitäkään pitänyt mun kertoa, vaan tästä: meillä tuli kirjailijasiskon kanssa melkein käsirysyä ja nokkapokkaa Puovosta, kun mä kerroin sille Puovon pulzarimpia puolia, ja se ei halunnut millään kuunnella. Siinä yhtyi K.C:n Aarnelta ym. saama uuskriittinen koulutus, ettei pidä yhtään välittää kirjailijasta, teoxet on oma maailmansa, pl us se, että Paavon varhaisrunous, etenkin Puut, kaikki heidän vihreytensä (jonka Puovo rykäisi vaimon kuoltua) oli tehnyt siihen teini-ikäisenä syvän vaikutuxen. Mä, joka olen ihan toista sukupolvea kuten Riitta Pylkkänen, vaikken sentään ihan niin hiljattaista, en osaa samalla lailla nostaa Paavoa sille pedestaalille, jolla se olisi mielellään seisonut Virosta tuottamansa Stalinin pazaan rinnalla tai sijalla omistamansa mezän reunassa.
ellauri053.html on line 323: Numero 4 on nelijalkaisten numero, ainoa kolmijalkainen eläin on miekkonen. Keskijalka ei ota edes maahan. Tulee Dreyfuss-kävelyä, outoa tai ontuvaa kuin Chapl inilla ja Sattuman Villellä. 4 legs good 3 legs bad.
ellauri053.html on line 499: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7a/Albrecht_D%C3%BCrer_-_Melencolia_I_-_Google_Art_Project_%28_AGDdr3EHmNGyA%29.jpg/330px-Albrecht_D%C3%BCrer_-_Melencolia_I_-_Google_Art_Project_%28_AGDdr3EHmNGyA%29.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri053.html on line 535: The Language of Criticism was originally Casey's doctoral thesis. Casey argued that critical judgement is objective because critical arguments are rational. They are rational due to considerations which, though they are not necessarily judgements of value, "criteriologically" impl y them. For exampl e, if a poem is sentimental "criteriologically" this impl ies that it is immature.
ellauri053.html on line 554: Mies ja nainen on setämiesten mielestä eri pl aneetalta kuin anus ja arse, jälleen kerran. Ach mitä scheissea. Leck meinen Arsch. Syvältä hanurista.
ellauri053.html on line 654: Kouluajan Horatius varotti kupl amaista ltn Boruvkaa nahkitakkisen naispoliisin valkin pullistamasta nutturasta ja joutsenkaulasta:
ellauri053.html on line 659: Albi, ne doleas pl us nimio memor
ellauri053.html on line 670: Sic visum Veneri, cui pl acet inparis
ellauri053.html on line 697: Herbert Spencer (27 April 1820 – 8 December 1903) was an English philosopher, biologist, anthropologist, and sociologist famous for his hypothesis of social Darwinism whereby superior physical force shapes history. Spencer originated the expression "survival of the fittest", which he coined in Principl es of Biology (1864) after reading Charles Darwin's On the Origin of Species. The term strongly suggests natural selection, yet Spencer saw evolution as extending into realms of sociology and ethics, so he also supported Lamarckism.
ellauri053.html on line 699: Spencer developed an all-embracing conception of evolution as the progressive development of the physical world, biological organisms, the human mind, and human culture and societies. As a polymath, he contributed to a wide range of subjects, including ethics, religion, anthropology, economics, political theory, philosophy, literature, astronomy, biology, sociology, and psychology. During his lifetime he achieved tremendous authority, mainly in English-speaking academia. "The only other English philosopher to have achieved anything like such widespread popularity was Bertrand Russell, and that was in the 20th century." Spencer was "the single most famous European intellectual in the closing decades of the nineteenth century" but his influence declined sharpl y after 1900: "Who now reads Spencer?" asked Talcott Parsons in 1937.
ellauri053.html on line 702: Spencer took the theory of evolution one step beyond biology and appl ied it to say that societies were organisms that progress through changes similar to that of a living species.
ellauri053.html on line 704: Spencer is best known as the originator of the expression "survival of the fittest", which he coined in Principl es of Biology (1864) after reading Charles Darwin's On the Origin of Species. The term strongly suggests natural selection, yet Spencer saw evolution as extending into realms of sociology and ethics, so he also supported Lamarckism.
ellauri053.html on line 713: For many, the name of Herbert Spencer is virtually synonymous with social Darwinism, a social theory that appl ies the law of the survival of the fittest to society and is integrally related to the nineteenth century rise in scientific racism.
ellauri053.html on line 762: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/58/Rabindranath-Tagore-Mrinalini-Devi-1883.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri053.html on line 778: ploads/2017/10/tagore-gandhi.jpg?impolicy=website&width=534&height=356" />
ellauri053.html on line 779: VIDEO
ellauri053.html on line 807: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bd/Mira_Devi%2C_Rathindranath_Tagore%2C_Rabindranath_Tagore%2C_Pratima_Devi%2C_Madhurilata_Devi.jpg/660px-Mira_Devi%2C_Rathindranath_Tagore%2C_Rabindranath_Tagore%2C_Pratima_Devi%2C_Madhurilata_Devi.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri053.html on line 811: After his resignation from Visva-Bharati, Tagore pl anned to move to Dehradun. He wrote to Nirmalchandra demanding that Mira be "handed-over" to him; Nirmalchandra obliged and Mira and her son 2-year old Jayabrato accompanied Tagore to Dehradun. Before leaving, Tagore wrote to Pratima, "I am not going secretly. I have informed everyone that Mira is with me." Pratima repl ied that she "would be happy, if he remained happy".
ellauri053.html on line 813: Pratima siis oli sen ykkösvaimo. Isä Rampen mieleisiä vaimoja. Sen mielipiteet vaimojen roolista sais nykysetämiehet kalpenemaan. A good wife knows her pl ace.
ellauri053.html on line 818: The Tagores belong to the Bandyopadhyaya group of Bengali Brahmins. The genealogy can be traced back to Daksha, one of the five Brahmins who were imported sometime in the 8th century from Kanauj to help in reviving orthodox Hinduism in Buddhist-ridden Bengal. The descendants of this Brahmin moved from one pl ace to another until one Panchanan in 1690 settled down at Govindapur near Calcutta. The opportunities of making money in this flourishing mercantile town, the stronghold of the East India Company, finally attracted the family to Calcutta in the latter part of the eighteenth century and they built their homes at Pathuriaghata and Jorasanko.
ellauri053.html on line 820: Prince Dwarkanath Tagore, my great-grandfather, was a romantic figure. Contemporary of Rammohan Roy, the Father of the Renaissance Movement of Bengal, he was closely associated with him in all his activities and rendered financial help when- ever required. The East India Company were by this time firmly established in Bengal and were rapidly building up their trade. Dwarkanath’s knowledge of English helped him to take advantage of the conditions prevailing under the Company’s rule and he was able at quite an early age not only to amass a fortune but also to gain high offices under the British. With Rammohan Roy he took a leading part in all the movements for the promotion of higher education and social welfare. There was hardly any institution founded during his life-time that did not owe its existence to the generous charity of Dwarkanath. He came to be known as Prince Dwarkanath in recognition of his benefactions. His business enterprises extended to fields unexpl ored by Indians in those days. He had a fleet of cargo boats for trading between India and England. To improve his business connections and gain further concessions from the Company, he himself went to England accompanied by his youngest son, Nagendranath. I have had occasion to read the diary kept by this grand-uncle of mine. It describes vividly and in very chaste English the social life Of the aristocracy of England in the early Victorian age as seen through the eyes of an Indian. There is also an interesting description of his adventurous journey across the country from Bombay to Calcutta at a time when India was in a very disturbed condition on the eve of the Sepoy Mutiny.
ellauri053.html on line 824: Soon after landing in London Dwarkanath became a favourite of Queen Victoria and of the court circle. There are many amusing stories told about his expl oits in England and France some of which I came to know from the letters written by his valet.
ellauri053.html on line 831: Jorasanko Kalkutassa oli siis paikka missä suvun patprbrbrliarkka bunkkasi. Kokonainen kermapersetehdaskompl exi naapurina köyhälistön korttelit.
ellauri053.html on line 863: Jagadish Chandra Bose had a wonderful fund of interesting stories, some very amusing, of the many lands he had visited and personalities he had met. He could go on telling them for hours and days together, yet one would never get tired of listening to him for he could always make the most trivial facts interesting, and his humour was so refreshing. He could also laugh ; so few peopl e can laugh well and at the proper time and pl ace. I would greatly miss him when he went away and secretly I would take a vow to become a scientist like him when I grew up.
ellauri053.html on line 892: My teacher, who had no illusions, regarding his pupil, trembled at the herculean task imposed upon him. However, the Maharshi’s word was law, and teacher and pupil set to work with such grim determination that at the end of the prescribed period my grandfather was greatly pl eased to hear me recite the mantras so dear to him.
ellauri053.html on line 896: The sacred thread ceremony, the Upanayan takes pl ace when a Brahmin boy is considered to be or a fit age to be attached to a Guru (teacher) to begin his education. He is taught the Gayatri mantram which every Brahmin is expected to repeal morning and evening as the text for his contempl ation of the Infinite and is given the sacred thread to wear as a symbol of his initiation as a Brahmin.
ellauri053.html on line 912: Father had composed some new songs for the opening ceremony, one of which, Mora satyer pare man (We dedicate ourselves to truth) remained as the school song for many years until it was repl aced by Amader Santiniketan (Our own Santiniketan).
ellauri053.html on line 916: The life led by both pupils and teachers was not only simpl e but almost austere. The ideal of Brahmacharya was the keynote of everything. The yellow uniform, which covered up the poverty of clothes; a pair of blankets, which served as our only bedding; the vegetarian meals comparable to jail diet in their dull monotony — these were the standards laid down.
ellauri053.html on line 926: In spite of everything — the poverty and lack of normal comfort and convenience — nobody compl ained, for we really believed in simpl e living and took pride in our poverty.
ellauri053.html on line 928: How-ever simpl e, the strain on Father’s resources to maintain the school must have been great. The institution had no income of its own besides the annual Rs. 1,800 drawn from the Santiniketan Trust. For several years students were not charged fees of any kind. They were given not only free education, but food and very often clothing as well. The whole burden had to be borne by Father, when his own private income was barely Rs. 200 a month. My mother had to sell nearly all her jewellery for the support of the school, before she died in 1902.
ellauri053.html on line 930: But it would be wrong to emphasize only the dark side of the picture. We were essentially a happy lot and life was very rich and interesting in spite of our outward poverty. Whenever Father was present, he poured his soul into the institution and made it lively by singing songs which he never tired of com- posing, reciting his poems, telling stories from the Mahabharaia , pl aying indoor games with the boys, rehearsing pl ays, and even taking classes.
ellauri053.html on line 934: Eri hienoa oli lomilla kun joku runoilijanpl anttu siteeras ulkomuistista eteviä runoilijoita: a youth of twenty-one, he could recite for hours freely from Virgil, Dante, Goethe, Shakespeare or Kalidas, — his favourites being Browning and Rabindranath.
ellauri053.html on line 940: Thou comest. New Year, whirling in a frantic dance amidst the stampede of the wind-lashed clouds and infuriate showers, while trampl ed by thy turbulence are scattered away the faded and the frail in an eddying agony of death.
ellauri053.html on line 948: (pl ayed by SNOUT) In this same interlude it doth befall
ellauri053.html on line 985: The death of my brother Samindra took pl ace when I was in college in America. At Monghyr he fell a victim to cholera and died soon after Father arrived there.
ellauri053.html on line 993: Only a perfect control of the emotions together with an irrepressible urge for creative expression could expl ain the continuous outpouring of his thoughts in poems, novels, short stories, essays and other writings irrespective of his surroundings or circumstances, mental or physical.
ellauri053.html on line 1008: Father always pl ays at making books. If ever I go to pl ay in father's room, you come and call me,
ellauri053.html on line 1026: "I felt sure that some Being who comprehended me and my world was seeking his best expression in all my experiences, uniting them into an ever-widening individuality which is a spiritual work of art. To this Being I was responsible; for the creation in me is His as well as mine." He called this Being his Jivan devata (“The Lord of His Life”), a new conception of God as man’s intimate friend, lover, and beloved that was to pl ay an important role in his subsequent work.
ellauri053.html on line 1138: The languid breeze pl ayed with it upon my cheek. Vetelänoloinen tuuli heitti sitä poskelle.
ellauri053.html on line 1155: His earliest volume of verse was published in 1889 , and its slow-paced and lyrical poems displ ay debts to Edmund Spenser, Percy Bysshe Shelley, and the poets of the Pre-Raphaelite Brotherhood.
ellauri053.html on line 1158: Yeats oli kiinnostunut muun muassa kelttimenneisyyden riiteistä, okkultismista, teosofiasta, uuspl atonismista, swedenborgilaisuudesta, idän uskonnoista sekä alkemiasta.
ellauri053.html on line 1164: Eliot quoted, in evidence, four short passages from The Cutting of an Agate, in which Yeats says that the poet must “be content to find his pl easure in all that is for ever passing away that it may come again, in the beauty of woman, in the fragile flowers of spring, in momentary heroic passion, in whatever is most fleeting, most impassioned, as it were, for its own perfection, most eager to return in its glory.” Tää on puhdasta Tandoorikanaa.
ellauri053.html on line 1174: He was very much fascinated by self-induced trance states, calculated symbolism, mediums, theosophy, crystal-gazing, folklore and hobgoblins. Golden appl es, archers, black pigs and such paraphernalia abounded. Often the verse has an hypnotic charm: but you cannot take heaven by magic, especially if you are, like Mr. Yeats, a very sane person.
ellauri053.html on line 1179: His compl aint against Yeats was that Yeats’s “supernatural world” was “the wrong supernatural world”: It was not a world of spiritual significance, not a world of real Good and Evil, of holiness or sin, but a highly sophisticated lower mythology summoned, like a physician, to suppl y the fading pulse of poetry with some transient stimulant so that the dying patient may utter his last words.
ellauri053.html on line 1191: Eliot needed to put a considerable distance between himself and Yeats, each of whom could be regarded as a Symbolist, however differently they responded to French Symbolism as Arthur Symons expounded it in The Symbolist Movement in Literature. It is my understanding that Symons led Yeats through the early chapters, with Mallarmé as the main figure, and that Eliot made his own way quickly through the several chapters until he reached Laforgue, the poet he found most useful in his attempt to discover his own voice. Still, Eliot’s animosity is hard to expl ain.
ellauri053.html on line 1272: A sudden blow: the great wings beating still Ett pl ötsligt slag av de stora vingarna som flaxar
ellauri053.html on line 1275: He holds her helpl ess breast upon his breast. en svan försöker nå hennes tuttar med det vita ankbröstet.
ellauri053.html on line 1356: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri053.html on line 1364: Gonne's marriage to MacBride was a disaster. This pl eased Yeats, as Gonne began to visit him in London.
ellauri053.html on line 1370: By 1916, Yeats was 51 years old and determined to marry and produce an heir. His rival John MacBride had been executed for his role in the 1916 Easter Rising, so Yeats hoped that his widow might remarry. His final proposal to Maud Gonne took pl ace in mid-1916. Gonne's history of revolutionary political activism, as well as a series of personal catastrophes in the previous few years of her life—including chloroform addiction and her troubled marriage to MacBride—not to mention that she was 50—made her a potentially unsuitable wife; biographer R. F. Foster has observed that Yeats's last offer was motivated more by a sense of duty than by a genuine desire to marry her.
ellauri053.html on line 1375: That September, Yeats proposed to 25-year-old Georgie Hyde-Lees (1892–1968), known as George, whom he had met through Olivia Shakespear. Despite warnings from her friends—"George ... you can't. He must be dead"—Hyde-Lees accepted, and the two were married on 20 October. Their marriage was a success, in spite of the age difference, and in spite of Yeats's feelings of remorse and regret during their honeymoon. The coupl e went on to have two children, Anne and Michael. Although in later years he had romantic relationships with other women, Georgie herself wrote to her husband "When you are dead, peopl e will talk about your love affairs, but I shall say nothing, for I will remember how proud you were of them."
ellauri053.html on line 1377: During the first years of marriage, they experimented with automatic writing; she contacted a variety of spirits and guides they called "Instructors" while in a trance. The spirits communicated a compl ex and esoteric system of philosophy and history, which the coupl e developed into an exposition using geometrical shapes: phases, cones, and gyres.[71] Yeats devoted much time to preparing this material for publication as A Vision (1925). In 1924, he wrote to his publisher T. Werner Laurie, admitting: "I dare say I delude myself in thinking this book my book of books".
ellauri053.html on line 1379: In December 1923, Yeats was awarded the Nobel Prize in Literature, "for his always inspired poetry, which in a highly artistic form gives expression to the spirit of a whole nation". He was aware of the symbolic value of an Irish winner so soon after Ireland had gained independence, and sought to highlight the fact at each available opportunity. His repl y to many of the letters of congratulations sent to him contained the words: "I consider that this honour has come to me less as an individual than as a representative of Irish literature, it is part of Europe's welcome to the Free State." Taas yxi tällänen taatatyyppinen poliittinen nobelisti.
ellauri053.html on line 1430: This poem is very famous in China. We first know Yeats by this wonderful poem, which contain a story of Yeats himself that move us so deepl y. From this poem, we know what is the true love, we know how deepl y love can be. This has been transferred into the famous poem of MUDAN, also been transferred into a popular song sung by SHUIMUNIANHUA, so we can see how arractive it was to us in China.
ellauri054.html on line 24: FiX und FOXi play:none">Einfach Klasse
ellauri054.html on line 68: Heidelbergissa Komensky tutustui myös Kopernikuksen heliosentriseen maailmankuvaan. Hän ei uskonut sitä, sillä hänen mukaansa se alensi Maan pl aneettojen tasolle, eikä sellainen maailmankuva voinut hänen mielestään pitää paikkaansa. Sen sijaan hän omaksui Tyko Brahen moosesmaisen maailmankuvan, jossa Aurinko ja Kuu kiertävät Maata ja muut pl aneetat Aurinkoa.
ellauri054.html on line 101: The exhibits of this small museum consist mainly of text and information-panels. I found it informative but it also was similar to reading a informative-book displ ayed on the museum walls. I missed some artwork or historical objects.
ellauri054.html on line 109: Ihan viihdepl äjäyxenä tämmönen kiva saxalainen rallatus joka esiintyi coveerina myös saxalaisessa tv-sarjassa Laulava lihakauppias:
ellauri054.html on line 110: VIDEO
ellauri054.html on line 146: Mit vit? Ettäkö Hermann Grimm ihaili Rafu Valde Emersonia?! Kaikkea vielä. Patbrlruuna ja klientti meinaa nykyään eri asioita kuin Roomassa. Yhtä vittumaisia. Kirjeet oli vähän kuin pl okit nykyään, kaikille tarkotettuja. Sen ajan sometusta. Montaigne apinoi Senecaa mut oli muuten epikuurolainen kuten Horatius ja sen porsas.
ellauri054.html on line 179: Voltairekin peukutti pörssiä. Ja teki rahakkaita turneita. Keinottelu huipentui etelämeren kupl aan. Kupl a kurkussa. Sillä tiellä ollaan vieläkin. Suomi nousuun. Make Sysmä great again. Sysmän Sähköpalvelun miehen takkuinen tukka sojottaa likaisen MSGA lippalakin peräaukosta.
ellauri054.html on line 183: Hannu Riikonen oli omituinen jo Norssin pihalla. Tepasteli kädet ristissä selän takana kuin Charlie Chapl in sen toisen hörhön Eero Tarastin perässä. Hannun sankari on Tex Willer. Lempo! Pannahinen! “I’ve tried to uphold the tradition of eccentric professors,” Riikonen says.
ellauri054.html on line 187: Riikonen even found his wife-to-be, Salme Marjatta, at the University. They both studied Latin and attended the same lectures. The couldn’t marry until 11.5 years after their first meeting, however, as H. K. Riikonen wanted to follow scholar Valentin Kiparsky’s advice to not marry until his dissertation was compl ete. "Saatuani väitöskirjani valmiixi aion palata mielirunoilijani Horatiuxen pariin." Julkaistuaan kirjeet Tarastin kanssa kirjana Eero ja Hannu (vai oliko se toisinpäin) se sanoi myhisten partaansa: "seuraavaxi aion julkaista rakkauskirjeeni."
ellauri054.html on line 193: Riikonen has also pl anned a book on the Aristotelian concept of temperance. He believes temperance can also be used to describe his own lifestyle. “I’m a calm, middle-of-the-road person. I have never veered toward the extreme, in good or bad.” Every day, Riikonen walks to his office in Topelia from his home in Etu-Töölö. “Last year, around the New Year, I lost my temper for the first time, as the electronic lock system in Topelia was broken and I couldn't get to my office during the weekend. The weekends are the best time to work, because it is very quiet,” says Riikonen.
ellauri054.html on line 195: Riikonen takes a walk back home around noon, for a half-hour nap. He is puzzled by peopl e who disapprove of naps as a mark of laziness. After all, it has been proven that they boost efficiency. Pikku Kunkin otti nokkaunet päivällä. Sekin oli keskitien kulkija, konfuzelainen.
ellauri054.html on line 213: Matthew Arnold (24. joulukuuta 1822 Laleham, Middlesex – 15. huhtikuuta 1888 Liverpool) oli englantilainen viktoriaanisen ajan runoilija sekä yhteiskunta- ja kirjallisuuskriitikko. Arnold työskenteli koulutarkastajana. Ei se kuitenkaan ollut pedantti. Hän oli kuuluisan Rugby Schoolin rehtorin Thomas Arnoldin poika ja vähemmän kuuluisien Tom Arnoldin ja William Delafield Arnoldin, romaanikirjailijan veli. Wordsworthin kamuja. A voice poking fun in wilderness. Oliko sekin puun takaa huutelija? Caricature from Punch, 1881: "Admit that Homer sometimes nods, That poets do write trash, Our Bard has written "Balder Dead," And also Balder-dash". Tennysonin ja Browningin jälkeen viktoriaanisten runoilijoiden twit-kisan pronssimies. "It might be fairly urged that I have less poetical sentiment than Tennyson and less intellectual vigour and abundance than Browning; yet because I have perhaps more of a fusion of the two than either of them, and have more regularly appl ied that fusion to the main line of modern development, I am likely enough to have my turn as they have had theirs." Arnold got into his poetry what Tennyson and Browning scarcely needed (but absorbed anyway), the main march of mind of his time.
ellauri054.html on line 302: And we are here as on a darkling pl ain Ja me ollaan täällä kuin pimeällä kentällä,
ellauri054.html on line 309: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/94/Matthew_Arnold_Vanity_Fair_11_November_1871.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri054.html on line 397: Sing Sing's name comes from the Indian phrase sin sinck . It means stone on stone. In 1901, three years after Edison introduced the electric chair at Sing Sing, the town changed its name to Ossining so peopl e wouldn't confuse it with the jail.
ellauri054.html on line 409: According to The Routledge Handbook of Poverty in the United States, "neoliberal social and economic policy has more deepl y embedded the carceral state within the lives of the poor, transforming what it means to be poor in America."
ellauri054.html on line 417: In 2013, countries that were currently using private prisons or in the process of impl ementing such pl ans included Brazil, Chile, Greece, Jamaica, Japan, Mexico, Peru, South Africa and Thailand. However, at the time, the sector was still dominated by the United States, United Kingdom, Australia and New Zealand.
ellauri054.html on line 423: The law needs to be structured in such a way that it allows a steady stream of new inmates. This ties back to that lobbying aspect: stricter laws mean more peopl e in the system. More peopl e in the system means more money for the prison. Many have argued that this is the entire reason that the war on drugs was started: another set of laws that could incarcerate thousands of peopl e every single year.
ellauri054.html on line 429: The capitalist mindset says any time an industry can be run privately it is better for the economy. The socialist mindset says that the government should be suppl ying those services. The realist says that the prison system is overcrowded as it is.
ellauri054.html on line 435: We may never produce a world with "Men like gods," but we can at least impl ant a business model that shall make each of us in truth and in fact his brother's keeper.
ellauri054.html on line 437: Edison invented the first electric chair to show how dangerous alternating current was. 614 peopl e eventually died in it. As a business model it sucks, with no returning customers.
ellauri054.html on line 483: After the séance, Browning wrote an angry letter to The Times, in which he said: "the whole displ ay of hands, spirit utterances etc., was a cheat and imposture." In 1902 Browning's son Pen wrote: "Home was detected in a vulgar fraud." Elizabeth, however, was convinced that the phenomena she witnessed were genuine, and her discussions about Home with her husband were a constant source of disagreement.
ellauri054.html on line 507: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/ea/Thomas_B._Read_%28American%2C_1822-1872%29_-_Portraits_of_Elizabeth_Barrett_Browning_and_Robert_Browning.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri055.html on line 23: HMHKI play:none">Ekofasismia
ellauri055.html on line 46: Breugnon sanoi ruttotautisena ettei Rooman keisari kuole pylly tyynyllä. Tänkin ajatelman mä olen lukenut jostakin, oisko ollut Erich Auerbachin Mimesixestä. Sen sanoi joku viti viimeisistä keisareista. Nimeä ei löydy Googlesta, joka pälpättää vaan Palpatinesta. Jenkkimulkut elää omassa kupl assa.
ellauri055.html on line 48: Koljalla oli Bouchetn runokirja mukana ruttomökissä. Kupl amahainen Google ei tarjoa ollenkaan Bouchetn Jeania 1500-luvulta vaan tyrkyttää jotain nimikaimaa jenkkineekeriä sivukaupalla.
ellauri055.html on line 78: Les deux hommes ont quinze ans de différence. Stefan Zweig s'intéresse aux lettres européennes et il a déjà traduit quelques œuvres d'auteurs anglais, français et belges. La découverte en 1907 des premiers volumes de Jean-Christophe sera décisive dans sa rencontre avec l'auteur. Il est séduit par la portée universelle de l’œuvre de Romain Rolland et pl us encore par l’homme auquel il rend visite, pour la première fois en février 1911, dans son appartement du 162, boulevard du Montparnasse. Les deux hommes partagent un amour pour la musique, une même foi en l'humanité et le sentiment d'appartenir à une civilisation, une culture commune, dont Romain Rolland esquisse les contours dans « la chevauchée européenne de Jean-Christophe ». Les deux écrivains entretiendront une correspondance suivie et intense entre 1910 et 1940 : 945 lettres ont été retrouvées (509 de Stefan Zweig dont une centaine en allemand, et 436 pour Romain Rolland). Cette correspondance est d'une importance capitale pour l'histoire des intellectuels du début du XXe siècle.
ellauri055.html on line 80: Le 22 décembre 1912, à l'occasion de la publication du dernier volume de Jean-Christophe, Stefan Zweig publie une lettre ouverte dans le Berliner Tageblatt, lettre dans laquelle il rendait hommage à l'action de Romain Rolland pour son œuvre de rapprochement entre les jeunesses de France et d'Allemagne (« Jean-Christophe est un événement éthique pl us encore que littéraire »).
ellauri055.html on line 102: Le bahaïsme, ou baha’isme, aussi connu sous le nom de foi bahá’íe (prononcer [baˈ.haː.ʔ.iː] ou [ba.hɑː.i]) ou béhaïsme (vieille graphie), est une religion abrahamique et monothéiste, proclamant l’unité spirituelle de l’humanité. Les membres de cette communauté religieuse internationale se décrivent comme les adhérents d’une « religion mondiale indépendante »[. Elle est fondée par le Persan Mīrzā Ḥusayn-ʿAlī Nūrī (1817-1892) en 1863. Ce nom est dérivé du surnom donné à son fondateur : Bahāʾ-Allāh (en arabe, « Gloire de Dieu » ou « spl endeur de Dieu ») — Bahá’u’lláh en translittération baha’ie. Les baha’is sont les discipl es de Bahāʾ-Allāh. Ils s’organisent autour de pl us de 100 000 centres (répertoriés par le centre mondial de Haïfa) à travers le monde. En 2011, cette religion met en avant dans ses documents le chiffre de 7 millions de membres appartenant à pl us de 2 100 groupes ethniques, répartis dans pl us de 189 pays. Son centre spirituel (lieu de pèlerinage — ziyarat) et administratif est situé à Haïfa et Acre, en Israël.
ellauri055.html on line 104: Les notions baha’ies de révélations (wahī (en)) religieuses progressives leur font accepter la validité de la pl upart des religions du monde, dont les fondateurs ou figures centrales sont considérées comme des manifestations de Dieu. Ces manifestations sont, par exempl e : Moïse, Jésus, Mahomet, Krishna, Zoroastre et Bouddha.
ellauri055.html on line 106: Quand un homme meurt, l’âme passe dans un autre monde, où le développement spirituel de celle-ci dans le monde physique devient une base pour le jugement et la pl ace dans le monde spirituel. Le paradis et l’enfer sont décrits comme des états spirituels de proximité ou de distance à Dieu qui décrivent les relations dans ce monde et dans l’autre, et non des endroits de récompense ou de punition après la mort.
ellauri055.html on line 108: Selon la foi baha’ie, chaque homme a le devoir de reconnaître Dieu et ses manifestations, et de se conformer à leurs enseignements. À travers la reconnaissance et l’obéissance, le service aux autres êtres humains, la prière et la pratique spirituelle régulière, les baha’is croient que l’âme devient pl us proche de Dieu, l’idéal spirituel dans la croyance baha’ie.
ellauri055.html on line 109: Il faut cependant noter que les décisions de la Maison Universelle de Justice, ainsi que les exégèses des écrits sacrés faites par ʿAbd-al-Bahāʾ et Shoghi Effendi, bénéficient d’une autorité s’imposant à tous les baha’is. Ce qui a conduit depuis les années 1980-1990 à ce que pl usieurs intellectuels et universitaires, historiens ou sociologues, soient chassés de la communauté baha’ie pour leurs vues jugées divergentes sur des questions-clefs (l’exclusion des femmes de la Maison universelle de justice ; l’obligation de soumettre toute publication, même universitaire, à un comité de censure ; l’homosexualité ; un système électoral qui favorise les sortants ; l’interdiction de participer à un parti politique ou d’adhérer à une organisation comme Amnesty International, etc., et surtout le sujet central de l’infaillibilité des institutions).
ellauri055.html on line 117: Voici un exempl e de quelques lois et préceptes religieux tirés du Kitāb-i Aqdas. Elles ont été codifiées par Shoghi Effendi, interprète désigné des écrits baha’is de 1921 à 1957 :
ellauri055.html on line 127: les baha’is de pl us de 15 ans et en bonne santé doivent jeûner (ṣawm) pendant le mois de ʿAlāʾ (du 2 au 20 mars);
ellauri055.html on line 136: Les templ es érigés par la communauté sont appelés « Maison d’adoration », arabe : مشرق اﻻذكار (Mašriq al-Aḏkār) (« L’Orient des invocations» ou « lieu où se lève à l’aube la mention du nom de Dieu »).
ellauri055.html on line 138: Ils doivent être construits selon des critères particuliers, liés au nombre 9 qui doit apparaître comme un « symbole évident pour tous ». Aussi, tous les templ es baha’is doivent-ils avoir neuf entrées.
ellauri055.html on line 140: Du point de vue liturgique, la méditation dans les templ es est accompagnée de lectures choisies dans les textes sacrés des autres religions. Ces textes — par exempl e le Pentateuque des juifs, le Nouveau Testament des chrétiens, le Coran des musulmans, le Bayān des babis, etc. — ont annoncé successivement, par paliers de perfection croissante, l’incessante révélation divine ou message de Dieu. En ce sens, le livre sacré liant tous les textes sur la révélation qui le précèdent est logiquement le dernier dans l’ordre chronologique, à savoir le Kitāb-i Aqdas (« Le pl us saint livre »). Il a été rédigé vers 1873 par Bahāʾ-Allāh et est compl été par différentes tablettes (lawḥ) révélées ensuite ; pour les baha’is, c’est le texte de référence bien qu’il ne soit pas pl us important que les autres, ni le livre le pl us lu par les baha’is eux-mêmes sur la foi. Le livre ne fut d’ailleurs accessible que très tard aux croyants occidentaux puisque la première traduction officielle en anglais date de 1992.
ellauri055.html on line 148: Le symbole fréquemment rencontré de la foi baha’ie est une étoile à neuf branches, parfois accompagnée d’une calligraphie du « Plus Grand Nom » يا بهاء الأبهى (Yā Bahāʾ al-Abhā') (« Ô Gloire du pl us glorieux ! »).
ellauri055.html on line 150: Mais d’après le Gardien Shoghi Effendi Rabbānī, le véritable symbole de la Foi baha’ie est cette étoile à 5 branches et non pas l’étoile à 9 pointes : « Strictly speaking the 5-pointed star is the symbol of our Faith, as used by the Báb and expl ained by Him (« À proprement parler, l’étoile à 5 branches est le symbole de notre Foi, tel qu’utilisé par le Bab et expl iqué par lui ») »
ellauri055.html on line 154: Shoghi Effendi Rabbānī (شوقي أفندي رباني) est né le 1er mars 1897 à Saint-Jean-d'Acre et mort à Londres le 4 novembre 1957. Il était le pl us âgé des petits-fils de ʿAbd-al-Bahāʾ (1844-1921), qui était lui-même l’aîné des fils de Bahāʾ-Allāh (1817-1892), le prophète-fondateur de la Foi baha’ie.
ellauri055.html on line 215: Saint Fiacre is the patron saint of the commune of Saint-Fiacre, Seine-et-Marne, France. He is the patron of growers of vegetables and medicinal pl ants, and gardeners in general, including pl oughboys. His reputed aversion to women is believed to be the reason he is also considered the patron of victims of venereal disease. He is further the patron of victims of hemorrhoids and fistulas, taxi cab drivers, box makers, florists, hosiers, pewterers, tilemakers, and those suffering from infertility. Finally, he is commonly invoked to heal persons suffering from various infirmities, premised on his reputed skill with medicinal pl ants.
ellauri055.html on line 319: Ketkä ovat eniten aukomassa päätä? Ylivoimaisesti yleisin ajattelija on Unknown, 28 mietelmää (pl us 4 lisää nimellä Author Unknown). Ykkösenä nimeltä mainituista on joku Gertrude Jekyll 5 sananlaskulla. Kakkosena Waldo Emerson ja joku May Sarton, pl us kiinalaiset sananlaskut nipussa, a 4 kpl . Seuraavina Thomas Jefferson, Abraham Lincoln, William Wordsworth, Lady Bird Johnson, Claude Monnet ja nippu tuntemattomampia hortikulturisteja kuten Druse, Pollan, Garofalo ja Breault, a 3. Kahden mietelmän veroisia on jo useita, julkkixista mm. William Blake, Vita Sackville-West, Rampe Tagore ja Thomas Moore.
ellauri055.html on line 360: He pl ants trees to benefit another generation.
ellauri055.html on line 438: One marked feature of the peopl e, both high and low, is a love for flowers.
ellauri055.html on line 456: Opportunity is missed by most peopl e because it is dressed in overalls and looks like work.
ellauri055.html on line 471: VIDEO
ellauri055.html on line 576: Setämiehen tien Almakin on paxuna. Puovo on käynyt Alman pukilla lukemattomia kertoja huomaamatta mitään. Paavo ei mitenkään tehnyt huomioita Alman suhteen, sellainen oli hänelle vierasta muutenkin. Paavo oli normaali mies, hän ei osannut lemmensuhteissaan ajatella sellaisia asioita, ja jos hänet niitä ajattelemaan pakotettiin, ne vaikuttivat vieroittavasti. Pahinta oli että hän omilla silmillään vihdoin oli pakoitettu näkemään tämän asian: Alma oli silminnähden punkeroitunut. Alma oli kyllä jotenkin niinkuin entistä nöyrempi, sitä enemmän mitä pitemmälle raskaus edistyi (siitä pl ussaa). Mutta samalla hän tuli kasvoiltaan huonomman näköisexi (pitkä miinus). Ja kun Puovo viimeisen kerran sinä suvena oli häntä tapaamassa, niin tapaaminen ei enää päättynyt samoin kuin lukemattomat edelliset tapaamiset eli melaa mekkoon ja kamat pussiin. Paavo palasi kotiin laimeana ja ikäänkuin nolattuna.
Reput tukalasti pullollaan.
ellauri055.html on line 631: Ruuaxi on Mirkku laittanut vihanneskeittoa ja vasikkaa. Pöydän yläpuolella, pihlajan oxassa, roikkui Mirjan Hannexelle lahjoittama japanilainen lyhty. Eelis ja Jenni pääsi yllättämään juhlijat rovastin autolla. (Hyvä ettei Handen petivaatteet olleet takan edessä.) Jennillä on päällä pl astiktakki ja päässä pillerirasia. Tyhjä kai. Eelixellä popl ari. Aulangon retki oli mennyt hyvin. Pääjuhlassa puhui 2 kansanedustajaa.
ellauri055.html on line 720: Antti ja Maija avioituivat Oulussa 28.5.1955. Perheeseen syntyi kuusi lasta. Antti valmistui dipl omi-insinööriksi vuonna 1958. Samana vuonna julkaistiin Antin ensimmäiset kirjat: novellikokoelma Maantieltä hän lähti ja romaani Kevättä ja syksyä.
ellauri055.html on line 749: Sitten alkoi Lahtinen sorista: Älä sinä poika pirlkele keiku siinä pl ankulla, putoat. Siitä se putosi Holminkin poika, pirlkele, ja kuoli. Virleenin Jussi sen rluumiin löysi lautatarlhan rlannasta ja sai marlkan, pirlkele. Kukas sinun rluumiisi maxaisi, jos hukkuisit?
ellauri055.html on line 870: Pransun novellit Suomettaressa saivat myönteisen vastaanoton. WSOY:n toimitusjohtaja Jalmari Jäntti kiinnostui Sillinpään kirjoituksista. Sillinpää itse olisi halunnut debytoida novellikokoelmalla, mutta kustantaja sai kuulla Sillinpään työstävän romaania, ja vaati aloitettavan sillä. Monien vaikeuksien kautta käsikirjoitus valmistui, ja se julkaistiin 1916 nimellä Elämä ja aurinko. Novellikokoelma, Ihmislapsia elämän saatossa, julkaistiin seuraavana vuonna. Toope halus kanteen oman kuvansa Eero-sedän Aurora-tupl atyykistä. Jotain rajaa sanoi mäntti Jäntti.
ellauri055.html on line 1119: Monismi poikkeaa dualismista eli kaksijakoisesta todellisuuskäsityksestä, jonka mukaan on olemassa kahdenlaista todellisuutta sekä pl uralismista eli monijakoisesta todellisuuskäsityksestä, jonka mukaan todellisuuksia on useita.
ellauri055.html on line 1128: Né à Gand, Maurice Maeterlinck est l'aîné d'une famille de trois enfants, flamande, bourgeoise, catholique, conservatrice et francophone. Après des études au collège Sainte-Barbe (Sint-Barbara) de Gand, il suit des études en droit avant de pratiquer le métier d'avocat durant une courte période. Maeterlinck publie, dès 1885, des poèmes d’inspiration parnassienne dans La Jeune Belgique. Il part pour Paris où il rencontre pl usieurs écrivains qui vont l'influencer, dont Stéphane Mallarmé et Villiers de l’Isle-Adam. Ce dernier lui fait découvrir les richesses de l'idéalisme allemand (Hegel, Schopenhauer). À la même époque, Maeterlinck découvre Ruysbroeck l'Admirable, un mystique flamand du XIVe siècle dont il traduit les écrits (Ornement des noces spirituelles). C'est ainsi qu'il se tourne vers les richesses intuitives du monde germanique en s'éloignant du rationalisme français. Dans cet esprit, il se consacre à Novalis et entre en contact avec le romantisme d'Iéna (Allemagne, 1787-1831, autour d'August et Friedrich Schlegel et de la revue l'Athenäum), précurseur en droite ligne du symbolisme. Les œuvres que publie Maeterlinck entre 1889 et 1896 sont imprégnées de cette influence germanique.
ellauri055.html on line 1197: Oisivat vaan nypl änneet niitä pizihattuja.
ellauri055.html on line 1202: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/08/J%C3%A4rnefelt%2C_Aurora-seura_%28sketch%29.jpg/640px-J%C3%A4rnefelt%2C_Aurora-seura_%28sketch%29.jpg" />
ellauri058.html on line 26: RAUHAA play:none">Setämiehissä
ellauri058.html on line 41: pload/w_1198,h_674,f_auto,fl_lossy,q_auto/13-3-5650229.jpg" height="200" />
ellauri058.html on line 58: pload//w_1198,h_799,f_auto,fl_lossy,q_auto:eco/13-3-11602108.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri058.html on line 87: I discovered reading when I was much younger than the little me in this picture. As a child, my favorite authors included C.S. Lewis, Roald Dahl, Jill Paton Walsh, Gertrude Chandler Warner, Louisa May Alcott, and J.R.R. Tolkien. I am a long-distance hiker, trail advocate, full moon camper, and adopter of sad old cats. I live, pl ay, and work in Two Harbors, Minnesota.
ellauri058.html on line 91: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/7e/The_Thin_Man_1934_Poster.jpg" />
ellauri058.html on line 97: The Thin Man is a 1934 American comedy-mystery directed by W. S. Van Dyke and based on the novel of the same name by Dashiell Hammett. The film stars William Powell and Myrna Loy as Nick and Nora Charles, a leisure-class coupl e who enjoy copious drinking and flirtatious banter. Nick is a retired police detective who left his very successful career when he married Nora, a wealthy heiress accustomed to high society. Their wire-haired fox terrier Asta was pl ayed by canine actor Skippy. In 1997, the film was added to the United States National Film Registry having been deemed "culturally, historically, or aesthetically significant."
ellauri058.html on line 101: Demokratia oli Hellaassa laahuxen diktatuuria (paizi ettei oikeasti ollut, vain pieni vähemmistö oli ns. vapaita, loput orjia). Res publica oli Roomassa patriisien oligarkiaa. Sama touhu jatkuu ryssissä ja jenkeissä. Keskilännen publikaanit on persuja, köyhtynyttä white trashia joka koittaa pitää värillistä laahusta poissa tontilta. Nää on mun maita ei tartte oravien tulla tänne mesomaan. Minähän sen oravan myrkytin. Ite on koko konkkaronkka vitun mamuja. Peopl e of pink color. Palefaceja. Vahinko ettei inkkareilla ollut ympäristömyrkkyjä. Olisivat syöttäneet maahantunkijoille maissin sijaan mikromuovia. Matut sano kiitos ja päästi punasulat pois päiviltä. Sen kunniaxi vielä järjestävät kiitospäiviä.
ellauri058.html on line 340: Hotakaisen veteraani on aivan se sama iänikuinen veteraaniklishee mistä pullanaama Kyrö 10v myöhemmin teki paalua. Onnexi ne työntää melkein kaikki jo vuohenputkea. Viimeisiä haravoidaan horisemaan izenäisyysvastaanotolle. Taitaa tänä vuonna jäädä haravoimatta. Kyllä minä mieleni pahoitin. Selvä pl agiaatti kyseessä. Vittu kai sekin karvaturpa on vielä haukuttava, kun kerta setämiehet on pantavana seinää vasten. Vaikka se on niin vetelä ettei se pysy edes seinää vasten pystyssä. Alustavasti se on jo haukuttuna paasauxessa n:ro 14 .
ellauri058.html on line 402: Esteettisten arvioiden siirron mahdottomuuteen tukeutuen kysynkin, että voiko kuka tahansa esittää arvion objektista. Tällöinhän tavallisella lukijalla on aivan yhtäläinen oikeus esittää arvio. Toki voidaan kyseenalaistaa arvion mielekkyys tai totuudenmukaisuus. Vaarana myös on pl uralismi. Blogistit perustavat enemmän makumieltymyksiin omat arvionsa kuin mihinkään kirjallisuustieteelliseen metodiin.
ellauri058.html on line 478: Ookei, tän perusteella ei tarvi enempää Hotakaista pl ärätä. Se on jo Juoksuhaudantiestä nähty. Vaikea uskoa että sitä pidetään humoristina. Taiwanilaisessa A Sun leffassa naurettiin vaan kerran: kun vankilasta vapautunut heebo pyysi uhriltansa anteexi että oli katkassut siltä käden, uhri nauroi kovaa ja ilottomasti. Hotakaisen huumori on vähän saman tasosta.
ellauri058.html on line 532: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b8/Marcel_Proust_1895.jpg/300px-Marcel_Proust_1895.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri058.html on line 533: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c0/Kalle_P%C3%A4%C3%A4talo_vuonna_1958.JPG" height="200px" />
ellauri058.html on line 597: Voimasanat ovat ilmaisukeinona nykymuotia, mutta kärsivät nopeasti inflaation ja tympäisevät. Päätalon kirjoissa noidutaan estoitta, mutta vain henkilöiden repl iikeissä. Kustantaja olisi voinut auttaa Heikkistä karsimaan stand up -tyylistä kiroilumaneeria. Heikkisen sietäisi lukea Arto Mustanojan pl okia.
ellauri058.html on line 685: plash.com/photo-1580710438972-1b939d002100?ixlib=rb-1.2.1&ixid=eyJhcHBfaWQiOjE1ODAzMX0&fm=jpg&q=85&fit=crop&w=1024&h=689" width="50%" />
ellauri058.html on line 695: Tutkijoiden ja pankkien keskuudessa vallitsee kuitenkin erimielisyyttä siitä, sanooko talous elpyessään ”pl öts”, ”bbzzoiinnnkkk” vai ”vittu kaveri se oli mun tuoppi”.
ellauri058.html on line 716: It has generally been thought that King Herod died at 69 years of age from compl ications of gonorrhea. Dr. Jan Hirschmann, a physician at the University of Washington School of Medicine in Seattle, decided to expl ore further, and presented his diagnosis at the Historical Clinical Pathologic Conference (CPC).
ellauri058.html on line 718: Dr. Hirschmann said he decided to focus on the symptom of itching. “At first, I considered Hodgkin’s disease and some diseases of the liver.” Chronic kidney disease covered all of Herod’s symptoms except gangrene of the genitalia. Dr. Hirschmann figured that the most probable cause of King Herod’s death was chronic kidney disease compl icated by Fournier’s gangrene, which is an unusual infection affecting the male genitalia.
ellauri058.html on line 733: player/41106/">Nasta raamis on lasten raamattunettitelkkari, jossa huvittaja ja opettaja Mila Lehtonen kertoo ihmeellisiä Raamatun tositarinoita piirtäen ja maalaten kuin Kylli-täti. Hänelle pitävät seuraa koiraneidit Nasta ja Pinni.
ellauri058.html on line 779: Following the death of his partner of more than 30 years, the philosopher Samuel Todes, Hine lived in semi-retirement in Evanston, Illinois. Hine died of compl ications of a blood disorder on August 20, 2012 at the age of 76. Varmaan AIDS. Pueriilit runot on kuiteskin omistettu "for Jerry". Hmm. Ezellanen Jami.
ellauri058.html on line 810: 1. I wish to let the reader know that I myself am sexually conservative: I am married, faithful to my wife, and a father. In this review I pl ead …castum esse decet pium poetam / ipsum. uersiculos nihil necesse est, qui tum denique habent salem ac leporem , si sunt molliculi ac parum pudici. Tää on Catulluxen runosta 16 joka alkaa Pedicabo ego vos et irrumabo . Teivas Oxalan unohtumattomana käännöxenä Suuhun myös peräpäähän teitä tökkään. Siellä sanotaan: Hartaan näät runoniekan siivo olla kuuluu, voi toki värsyt olla toisin; silloin niissä on sukkeluutta, suolaa, pehmeet jos ovat eikä liian siivot. Kovia munia ja pehmoisia värssyjä. Vanhana on pikemminkin toisin päin.
ellauri058.html on line 954: Dans les romans, il apparaît comme ayant entre 45 et 60 ans. Quand Simenon crée son personnage il lui donne entre 40 et 45 ans et comme il pensait que de toute manière son commissaire devait prendre sa retraite à 55 ans, on peut estimer que le commissaire à la retraite qui apparaît dans le roman Maigret a un peu pl us de 55 ans.
ellauri058.html on line 960: Dans la pl upart des enquêtes, notamment les premières publiées, les lecteurs le découvrent dans la quarantaine, pesant, massif sous son chapeau melon, ce qui ne l'empêchera pas quelque temps pl us tard de passer au feutre mou. Avec son gros pardessus noir, la pipe au bec, mains dans les poches. Julle vetää viinaa olutta viiniä ja aperitiiveja ja polttaa piippua aivan ketjussa. Murahtelee puhelimeen ja ripustaa takasin koukkuun luuria. Eclusessa sen etunimi oli Joose. Kymmenluvulla sillä oli yhtä isot wiixet kuin Daltonin weljexillä.
ellauri060.html on line 25: Aku näkee punaista play:none">Punapyllypaviaaneja
ellauri060.html on line 61: Usein kannattaa kärsiä hyvän edestä, esim raamatullisesti 14 vuotta orjuutta Raakelin tähden. Isä ei anna Raakelia avioon, ennen kuin ylkä on palvellut seitsemän vuotta palkatta. Kannattaa silti tehdä työt, että saa unelmiensa tytöt, Laabanin lampaista ja laidunmaista puhumattakaan. Ei Leakaan oikeastaan ollut hassumpi, monessa suhteessa Raakelia jopa parempi. Näin pitää laskea pisteitä, joiden pl ussien ylijäämää kutsun onnellisuussaldoxi. Elämän tarkoitus, ainakin minusta sanoo Timo, on pitää saldo pl ussalla mahdollisimman paljon.
ellauri060.html on line 63: Annan esimerkin. Yleensä ajattelemme, että pahan pystyy korjaamaan hyvän ylijäämällä. Siis, kun lääkäri aiheuttaa kipua, kivun pystyy kompensoimaan ajattelemalla terveyden lisääntymisen iloa. Hyvä ja paha ovat kuin pl us- ja miinus- pisteitä. Jos kärsimykseni on -4:n suuruinen, +5 korvaa sen ja jää jopa piste pl ussan puolelle.
ellauri060.html on line 108: T.S. Eliot ei ollut skotti kuten J.A. Hunter eikä huumormiehiä. Kuten Peter Ackroyd ize, se oli todennäköisesti homo. Se selvinnee tästä tiiliskivestä jos jaxan selata. Ackroyd nyt ainakin tunnetusti on. Homopetteri on kirjoittanut elämäkertoja mm. ennen jo paasatuista henkilöistä William Blake , Charles Dickens , T.S. Eliot , plin Charles">Charles Chapl in ja Sir Thomas More . Tokko ne KAIKKI sentään oli homoja? Tiedä häntä. TS Eliot muistuttaa myös Hotakaista siinä, että se koitti pitää yxityiselämänsä izellään. Eipä onnistunut, kiitos homopetterin. Mitähän salattavaa Hotakaisella on? Onko luurankoja kaapissa?
ellauri060.html on line 110: Peter first knew that he was gay when he was seven. Somewhat later he had a long-term relationship with Brian Kuhn, an American dancer he met while at Yale. After a nervous breakdown in the late 1980s, Ackroyd moved to Devon with Kuhn. However, Kuhn was then diagnosed with AIDS, and died in 1994, after which Ackroyd moved back to London. In 1999, he suffered a heart attack and was pl aced in a medically induced coma for a week.
ellauri060.html on line 112: The result of his Yale fellowship was Notes for a New Culture, written when Ackroyd was only 22 and eventually published in 1976. The title, an echo of T. S. Eliot's Notes Towards the Definition of Culture (1948), was an early indication of Ackroyd's penchant for expl oring and re-examining the bollocks of other London-based writers.
ellauri060.html on line 118: Toinen lupaavan oloinen kirjalöydöskaxikko on Mihail Solohovin 'Apinakohtalo' pl us 'He taistelivat reviirinsä puolesta' 1943 ja Ritva Enäkosken 'Halu, hinku ja haba, eli miten bodaan kantin kestäväxi' 1993. Kansa taisteli, koiraat kertovat, ja vähän naaraatkin. Solohov sai aherruxestaan Nobelin palkinnon 1965, ja jo sitä ennen Leninin palkinnon. Ritva Enäkosken osalta jury on vielä sisällä. On sillä jo Vuoden innostaja -palkinto.
ellauri060.html on line 193: Kuulostaa pahalta setäilyltä. Hotakaiselta ja Airaxiselta yxissä kansissa. Lisää löytyi jostain kirjapl okista:
ellauri060.html on line 235: Daniel Foe was probably born in Fore Street in the parish of St Giles Crippl egate, London. His father, James Foe, was a prosperous tallow chandler of Flemish descent, and a member of the Worshipful Company of Butchers. In Defoe's early childhood, he experienced some of the most unusual occurrences in English history: in 1665, 70,000 were killed by the Great Plague of London, and the next year, the Great Fire of London left only Defoe and two other guys standing in his neighbourhood. In 1667, when he was probably about seven, a Dutch fleet sailed up the Medway via the River Thames and attacked the town of Chatham in the raid on the Medway. His mother, Alice, had died by the time he was about ten.
ellauri060.html on line 237: Defoe later added the aristocratic-sounding "De" to his name, and on occasion made the bogus claim of descent from the family of De Beau Faux. His birthdate and birthpl ace are uncertain, and sources offer dates from 1659 to 1662, with the summer or early autumn of 1660 considered the most likely.
ellauri060.html on line 249: Daniel Defoen bestselleri Robinson Crusoe oli esikuvallinen kolonialistinen rags to riches story, jossa yritteliäs haaxirikkoinen orjakauppias rakentaa izelleen uuden pl antaashin ja hankkii sinne tyhmän mutta kiitollisen neekerin nimeltä Perjantai. Suurin osa tarinasta kertoo miten nokkelasti Robinson hankki izelleen omaisuuxia. Loppupeleissä kotiinpäästyä siitä tuli niin rikas ettei se tiennyt izekään. Just tollasta kapitalistista laissez faire roopeankka unelmointia. "Tuskin voi kuvitella tylsempää kirjaa kuin Robinson Crusoe. On surullista nähdä lasten edelleen lukevan sitä", kirjoitti filosofi Gilles Deleuze kirjasta."
ellauri060.html on line 318: VIDEO
ellauri060.html on line 326: Jussi P.n tragedia on eze muistetaan vaan tosta parodiapl äjäyxestä Elmo. Se oli enempi masis kaveri.
ellauri060.html on line 344: pload/w_1200,h_630,c_fit,q_80/13-3-5357710.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri060.html on line 468: VIDEO
ellauri060.html on line 470: This song may be of quite recent origin, since almost half of the known exampl es are sound recordings, and there's only one broadside printing. On the other hand, there's an older and widely printed broadside Jimmy and his True Love, which might well be an earlier version—or it may just be a song with universal appeal and a good chorus that peopl e still enjoy singing. Of the 40 or so instances in Roud, most are from the south west of England or East Anglia—though Gavin Greig collected a dozen exampl es in Scotland in the early years of last century. No other Sussex version has been collected.
ellauri060.html on line 475: It was pl easant and delightful on a midsummer's morn
ellauri060.html on line 526: Senkin ektopl asman sivutuotteet!
ellauri060.html on line 583: dipl omaatti
ellauri060.html on line 584: dipl omaattiääliö
ellauri060.html on line 589: ektopl asma
ellauri060.html on line 590: ektopl asman varjokuva
ellauri060.html on line 758: pl aneettainvälinen taivaanrannanmaalari
ellauri060.html on line 761: protopl asma
ellauri060.html on line 801: saksiravun ektopl asma
ellauri060.html on line 889: It was amazing to see that all peopl e needed to make them happy was food and drink and other peopl e.
ellauri060.html on line 938: 36 Facebook users sympathized with the McNallens’ pl ight, grousing over Facebook’s recent crackdown on white supremacists and sharing various pl atforms that would be more receptive to peopl e who share his views. “Please look at MeWe,” one user wrote. “Many are heading over there.”
ellauri060.html on line 943: In an email to Rolling Stone, McNallen, who said he no longer has an official position in the Ásatrú Folk Assembly, confirmed he did indeed have a profile on the social networking app. He also expressed befuddlement that he had been banned from Facebook in the first pl ace, saying that he has “NEVER advocated violence and I have NEVER insulted, threatened, or ridiculed any ethnic, religious, or racial group.”
ellauri060.html on line 945: “I don’t expect you to agree with my religious, social, or political beliefs – I’m good with that,” he said. “But the honest alt truth is that peopl e have been driven off of Facebook for bullshit reasons.”
ellauri060.html on line 947: A lot of peopl e agree with McNallen, even those who don’t necessarily share his extremist views — and many of them are heading over to MeWe.
ellauri060.html on line 959: ples.png" height="200px" />
ellauri060.html on line 989: Stefan Therman kosti Sofia Belórfille tupl asutinalla! Iski nopeassa tahdissa kaksi (2) julkkiskaunotarta!
ellauri060.html on line 996: Lue myös: Salamakäänne: Sofia Belórfista eronnut Stefan Therman laittoi ex-parin lemmenpesän myyntiin - muuttivat luksuskotiin vain 2 kuukautta sitten! Katso video talon sisältä! Lähinaapurit kertovat Seiskalle, että naapurustossa ollaan lopen kyllästyneitä vallitsevaan tilanteeseen. Stefun vanhaan uimahalliin remontoima äskettäin myyntiin laittama ökyasunto sijaitsee keskellä korkeaa kerrostalokompl eksia, joten biletysääneet raikuvat komeasti pihan läpi ympärillä oleviin kerrostaloasuntoihin.
ellauri060.html on line 1042: The core issue is the Web as we know has been dying, as peopl e all over the world do not want to bother to put up links to other high quality content just for the sake it. It is not that there is no such excellent content, there certainly is on the Web itself which now has tens of trillions of archived pages.
ellauri060.html on line 1044: But what good are those pages if the suppl y of NEWLY created and added pages is shrinking, with fewer and fewer good links? This decline is very bad, as it gets harder and harder to constantly surface good stuff among the FRESHEST suppl y of indexed content.
ellauri060.html on line 1046: This content quality problem has been exacerbated by Google’s switch to emphasize the freshness of their index years ago. The rationale was that there was so much good stuff around, and that its suppl y was (supposedly even exponentially) constantly increasing so Google would always be able to show amazing results just from the freshest portion of their index.
ellauri060.html on line 1050: The same really goes for basically every vertical. Way back (remember Googlebase?) it was thought nobody should bother with any vertical as Google had it in there anyway. Googlebase is long gone and peopl e go to CarGurus or Carvana for cars, Zillow for online house listings, Indeed and others for job postings etc., the list goes on and on.
ellauri060.html on line 1061: In addition, BERT has been quickly surpassed by OpenAI GPT-3 and GPT-2 which are simpl y huge - GPT-3 has 175 billion parameters and takes tens of thousands of powerful specialized FPU cards and weeks to train. Good luck trying to put something like that in production at tens of thousands of queries-per-second (qps) which is what Google requires. Lisää aiheesta
ellauri060.html on line 1140: Oikismulkero Solzhenizyn väitti että Don Kasakka oli pl agioinut kaikki kirjansa. Taisi olla paskapuhetta. No Don Kasakka oli haukkunut pydeen Alexin Ivan Denisovitjin päivän. Silmä hampaasta. 60-luvulla Donilla oli wiixet ja typerät kaljukiharat. Miihkali kuoli kurkkusyöpään 1984. Takuulla poltti liikaa huonolaatuisia venäläisiä syöpäkääryleitä, etenkin Belomorskia. Sen rinnuxissa oli mitaleita kuin joulukuusessa.
ellauri060.html on line 1154: The phrase originated during World War II. Lexicographer Eric Partridge attributes it to British army intelligence very early in the war (using the dative pl ural illegitimis).
ellauri060.html on line 1162: The phrase is also used as the first line of one of the extra cod Latin verses added in 1953 to an unofficial school song at Harvard University, "Ten Thousand Men of Harvard". This most frequently pl ayed fight song of the Harvard University Band is, to some extent, a parody of more solemn school songs like "Fair Harvard thy Sons to your Jubilee Throng". (voi helvetti, tää oli tosi paha.) The first verse is a nonsense sequence of Latin clichés:
ellauri060.html on line 1172: The phrase, often accompanied by an English translation, has appeared in many pl aces:
ellauri060.html on line 1192: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/30/Brexit_the_time_has_come_for_the_UK_to_clarify_its_position_%2846766253871%29.jpg/1024px-Brexit_the_time_has_come_for_the_UK_to_clarify_its_position_%2846766253871%29.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri061.html on line 24: MYRSKY JA MYLVÄYS play:none">Myrkyllistä
ellauri061.html on line 31: Ernesto Renan pöpötti jotain Shakespearen Myrskystä. Mixköhän, musta se ei ollut paljon mistään kotoisin. Ja hölmö Paavo Haavikko. Ja vielä se pirzakka Pirre Manninen ja valkeen Sale. Pitäiskö se Shakespearen pl äjäys lukaista uudestaan. Eise varmaan ole yhtään parempi kuin eka lukemalla. Se on aika turaus. Williamkin ajatteli ize olevansa joku Prospero. Se on narsistisen setämiehen rintakuva.
ellauri061.html on line 82: No sitten tulee kuvaan nää oudot hyypiöt: jonkun algerialaisen noidan poika Caliban, varmaan vajakki, moroni tai simpl etoni, sekä tää Ariel, ei juuri fixumpi, jonka samainen noita oli pannut puunrungon sisään talteen. Ne on jotain Prosperon käsiapulaisia. Maan möhkö Caliban ei viizi kantaa lisää halkoja. Ariel palaa vedenneidoxi puettuna. Ihana mekko! sanoo Prospero.
ellauri061.html on line 189: A Midsummer Night's Dream is a comedy written by William Shakespeare in 1595/96. The pl ay is set in Athens and consists of several subpl ots that revolve around the marriage of Theseus and Hippolyta. One subpl ot involves a conflict between four Athenian lovers. Another follows a group of six amateur actors rehearsing the pl ay which they are to perform before the wedding. Both groups find themselves in a forest inhabited by fairies who manipulate the humans and are engaged in their own domestic intrigue. The pl ay is one of Shakespeare's most popular and is widely performed. Populääri lue vulgääri. Niin aina.
ellauri061.html on line 193: Dorothea Kehler has attempted to trace the criticism of the work through the centuries. The earliest such piece of criticism that she found was a 1662 entry in the diary of Samuel Pepys. He found the pl ay to be "the most insipid ridiculous pl ay that ever I saw in my life". He did, however, admit that it had "some good dancing and some handsome women, which was all my pl easure".
ellauri061.html on line 195: The next critic known to comment on the pl ay was John Dryden, writing in 1677. He was preoccupied with the question of whether fairies should be depicted in theatrical pl ays, since they did not exist. He concluded that poets should be allowed to depict things which do not exist but derive from popular belief. And fairies are of this sort, as are pigmies and the extraordinary effects of magic. Based on this reasoning, Dryden defended the merits of three fantasy pl ays: A Midsummer Night's Dream, The Tempest, and Ben Jonson's Masque of Witches. Varmaan se olis pitänyt Kiekkomaailmastakin ja Valtaistuinpelistä. Ja Harry Potterista.
ellauri061.html on line 197: Francis Gentleman was much less appreciative of this pl ay. He felt that its major weaknesses were a "puerile" pl ot and that it consists of an odd mixture of incidents. The connection of the incidents to each other seemed rather forced to Gentleman. Sama vika vaivaa Jari Pervoa, Rovaniemen Shakespearea (ks alempana).
ellauri061.html on line 199: Edmond Malone, a Shakespearean scholar and critic of the late 18th century, found another flaw in this particular pl ay, its lack of a proper decorum. He found that the "more exalted characters" (the aristocrats of Athens) are subservient to the interests of those beneath them. In other words, the lower-class characters pl ay larger roles than their betters and overshadow them. He found this to be a grave error of the writer. Tääkin muistuttaa Nuorgamin runoilijasta (ks alempana).
ellauri061.html on line 201: August Wilhelm Schlegel työnsi myös lusikkansa soppaan. Schlegel perceived unity in the multipl e pl ot lines. He noted that the donkey's head is not a random transformation, but reflects Bottom's true nature. Eli se oli oikeasti oikea aasi. Ovelaa. Hyvin ajateltu Robin! He identified the tale of Pyramus and Thisbe as a burlesque of the Athenian lovers.
ellauri061.html on line 203: In 1817, William Hazlitt found the pl ay to be better as a written work than a staged production. He found the work to be "a delightful fiction" but when staged, it is reduced to a dull pantomime. He concluded that poetry and the stage do not fit together.
ellauri061.html on line 205: Samuel Taylor Coleridge felt that Helena is guilty of "ungrateful treachery" to Hermia. He thought that this was a reflection of the lack of principl es in women, who are more likely to follow their own passions and inclinations than men. Women, in his view, feel less abhorrence for moral evil, though they are concerned with its outward consequences. Coleridge was probably the earliest critic to introduce gender issues to the analysis of this pl ay. Kehler dismisses his views on Helena as indications of Coleridge's own misogyny, rather than genuine reflections of Helena's morality.
ellauri061.html on line 207: Another misogynist, Maginn was particularly amused by the way donkey-headed weaver Bottom reacts to the love of the fairy queen: compl etely unfazed. Maginn argued that "Theseus would have bent in reverent awe before Titania. Bottom treats her as carelessly as if she were the wench of the next-door tapster."
ellauri061.html on line 209: In 1839, the philosopher Hermann Ulrici wrote that the pl ay and its depiction of human life reflected the views of Platonism. In his view, Shakespeare impl ied that human life is nothing but a dream,
ellauri061.html on line 211: James Halliwell-Phillipps, writing in the 1840s, found that there were many inconsistencies in the pl ay, but considered it the most beautiful poetical drama ever written.
ellauri061.html on line 233: Noniin, nyt tuli perinteisiä sekaannuxia. Puck tylsimys ruikkii lemmenkukkaa Lysanderin naamaan, joka alkaakin fanittaa nyt Helenaa. Helena haluu Dimitriä, Dimitri Herniaa, Hernia Lysanderia. Syntyy samanlainen neliödraama kuin Paulin, Nuutin ja Ecemin kolmio. Eli karhukopl an juna.
ellauri061.html on line 243: Hei täähän on just se sama tarina kuin Roomeon ja Juulian lopussa. Eliskä pirtelö on selkeesti pl agioinut sen pukinhajuiselta runosepolta.
ellauri061.html on line 291: Lukaisin keihäänheiluttajan bestsellerin Sally Fosterin tennispojan tiiliskiven taustaxi. Tää oli paljon lyhkäsempi ja parempi läppäkin. PST! Please see the bottom of the page for full expl anatory notes and helpful resources.
ellauri061.html on line 368: HAMLET 'Tis e'en so: the hand of little empl oyment hath HAMLET Niin kai: toimettomammat on tuntoherkempiä.
ellauri061.html on line 388: HAMLET Why, e'en so: and now my Lady Worm's; chapl ess, and HAMLET No tottakai: tai sit rouva Matonen; leuatta päin, ja
ellauri061.html on line 392: but to pl ay at loggats with 'em? mine ache to think on't. niillä voi nyt skulata mölkkyä? Päähän sattuu ajatella sitä.
ellauri061.html on line 568: Conjures the wandering stars, and makes them stand kuzuu esiin pl aneetat, ja saa ne pysähtymään
ellauri061.html on line 573: [Grappl ing with him.] [Ui liiveihin.]
ellauri061.html on line 576: For, though I am not spl enitive and rash, Sillä vaiken mä olekaan synkeä ja pikavihainen,
ellauri061.html on line 606: When that her golden coupl ets are disclosed, (naispuolisen), kun se on lopettanut kurnutuxen,
ellauri061.html on line 625: Critics have spent a considerable amount of time debating Hamlet's age. Hamlet here is thirty years old, as the First Clown makes clear (lines 133-151). However, "young Hamlet", as he is referred to earlier in the pl ay is still attending university and courting Ophelia. Laertes says that Hamlet's love is like "a violet in the youth of primy nature" (1.3.6). The noted scholar Grant White was so annoyed by this dilemma that he, defying logic, concluded that Hamlet was twenty when the pl ay started and thirty at its close. (See Studies in Shakespeare, p. 79 ff.). How important is Hamlet's age to our understanding or enjoyment of the pl ay? Would Hamlet's age have been an issue for pl ay-goers at Shakespeare's Globe? For more on this topic, pl ease click here .
ellauri061.html on line 641: No sit pikasesti vaan spoileri. Näytelmä on melkein lopussa. H. avaa kirjeen jonka von Neumann ja Morgenstern vei britteihin jossa H. käskettiin nirhata ja kirjotti sen uudestaan niin että kopl a ize pitää listiä ja postileimasi sen iskältä perityllä leimalla.
ellauri061.html on line 644: Osric vesikärpänen ei suostu laittamaan läzää päähän vaikka Hamlet käskee. Osric kehuu Laertesta kupl amuovixi, Hamlet vittuilee. Osricin poinzi on et Laerteen tehtäväxianto on tappaa H kaxintaistelussa. Kinkulla ja Laerteella on siitä joku tyhmä veto. H. suostuu ja lähettää Osricin laputtamaan läzä päässä.
ellauri061.html on line 715: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/1b/D%27annunzio%2C_age_7.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri061.html on line 716: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/b2/Gabriele_D%27Annunzio.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri061.html on line 718: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/it/c/c5/Mussolini_and_D%27Annunzio.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri061.html on line 758: ploads/2019/03/bulgariascreenshot-640x400.png" height="200px"/>
ellauri061.html on line 768: Gal Barak, an Israeli call center manager, the so-called Wolf of Sofia, was arrested in Sofia in February 2019. Most of the empl oyees of the call center were Bulgarian but the managers were Israeli, a source told The Times of Israel.
ellauri061.html on line 770: Barak, the reported suspect in the police raids, incorporated a company called Gal Barak Solutions in Israel in January 2015. Later that year it changed ownership and changed its name to Itzik Gellet Solutions. Peopl e familiar with the company told The Times of Israel the company operated a binary options call center at Allenby 103 in Tel Aviv, two blocks from the offices of the Israel Securities Authority.
ellauri061.html on line 772: Under tio år från 2007 jobbade som mest flera tusen israeler med binära optioner och lyckades lura dumma apor världen över på mångmiljardbelopp, tills Knesset förbjöd verksamheten 2017. Att industrin började blomstra i Israel förklarar tidningen med ett stort antal inflyttare, "olim", frän hela världen som behövde försörja sig. Gal Baraks pl atformar erbjuder nu hjälp till dem som blivit offer för bedrägelserna. Dessvärre handlar det ofta om samma brottslingar som på det här sättet pressar sina offer på pengar en andra gång. Polisen misstänker Knesset för grov antisemitism.
ellauri061.html on line 776: Ehud Barak says he is the blessed man to lead Israel. Another Messiah. His original name was Brog. He has 3 children, wonder if one of them is called Gal. In an interview with Haaretz reported in January 2015, Barak was asked to expl ain the source of his "big" capital, with which he "bought 5 apartments and connected them," and by which he "lives in a giant rental apartment in a luxury high rise." Barak said he currently earns more than a $1 million a year, and that from 2001 to 2007, he also earned more than a $1 million every year, from giving lectures and from consulting for hedge funds. Barak also said he made millions of dollars more from his investments in Israeli real estate properties.
ellauri061.html on line 795: A prophetess named Deborah judged or made rulings for the peopl e of Israel under a palm tree during that time. One of Deborah’s judgments was to instruct Barak to summon 10,000 men and attack Jabin’s army. Likely fearful to compl y with such a command, Barak told Deborah, “If you go with me, I will go; but if you don’t go with me, I won’t go” (Judges 4:8). She repl ied, “Certainly I will go with you. . . . But because of the course you are taking, the honor will not be yours, for the Lord will deliver Sisera into the hands of a woman” (verse 9).
ellauri061.html on line 797: Deborah and Barak then gathered 10,000 troops and attacked Sisera and his army. Barak’s troops won: “All Sisera’s troops fell by the sword; not a man was left” (Judges 4:16). Sisera himself fled to the tent of a Hebrew woman named Jael. She gave him milk to drink and covered him with a blanket in the tent. Then, “Jael . . . picked up a tent peg and a hammer and went quietly to him while he lay fast asleep, exhausted. She drove the peg through his templ e into the ground, and he died” (verse 21).
ellauri061.html on line 805: Lessons for today from the lives of Deborah and Barak include the following: 1) God often calls peopl e to step out in faith to attempt the unexpected, 2) God often uses unlikely peopl e and sources to accompl ish His pl ans, 3) God sometimes requires great risk and effort on our behalf as part of His divine pl an. In the case of Deborah and Barak, they risked their lives in war, while Jael took in a runaway fugitive and risked her life to end his and help free Israel from oppression. Ultimately, this account reveals that God is in control of the nations and changes their leaders according to His desires.
ellauri061.html on line 974: Pervo häpeää tupakanreikäistä popl aria. Se haluis näyttää pöyhökkäältä ulospäin. Se on kuitenkin jouluporsaannäköinen narsistipunkero. Toivottavasti sille tehdään peräsuolen tähystys. Poliittisesti se on arvattavasti talousliberaali persuporvari, Juhannes Kempeleläisen kaliiperia. Antikommunisti ja työväenliikkeen tappaja. Pienyrittäjänä aina vetämässä kotiinpäin, viilaa linssiin vaikka elinkautisvankia. Kehuskelee sillä että ei pyydä taxissa satasesta takasin kun on kännissä, krapulassa tinkii joka penniä. Persulainen kuumuu pääjohtajista ja vihaa luottamusmiehiä. Juoxee joka perseen perässä.
ellauri061.html on line 1083: ”Olen luvannut Kallelle, että en nolaa häntä puheillani, mutta sanon dipl omaattisesti, että toki hänkin on joutunut opettelemaan joitain asioita kantapään kautta niin kuin jokainen nuori ihminen”, Kati sanoo, ja jatkaa iloisesti Kallen nolaamista.
ellauri061.html on line 1131: Kaikki ns. henkilöt tässä pl ärässä on kuuluisan kirjailijan sitä taikka tätä. Koko pahvimaailma pyörii sen löysän perseen ympärillä. Minäminäminä-muotoista suollosta. Statistit saavat irtopisteitä kun ymmärtävät nauraa pervon vizeille. Pisteliäs possukka. Kun tulee hiljaista, Pervo alkaa puhua izestään ja kirjailijantyön vaivoista. Harvoin tulee. Perse luulee ironisoivansa kaikkea. Kaikkea joo paizi kirjailijaminäänsä. Siinä se roikkuu hampaat irvessä kuin pelastusrenkaassa. Ja perintöä. Persulainen tuntee rahan arvon. Köyhät nousukkaat siitä tunnetaan.
ellauri061.html on line 1426: Ei piereskellä konsertissa. Narinkkatorilla esiintyy kolmen polven miesketju: Leo Maanvilja, hänen poikansa Poika sekä pojanpoikansa Kepl o. Leo on kokenut karun poikakotimenneisyyden ja Poika ylläpitää netissä vihasivustoa. Kepl o yrittää olla moderni mies, joka syö horsmat, maksaa taksit ja puhuu tunteista, mutta kun tyttöystävä jättää, Kepl on kantti ei kestä. Okei, samaa paskaa kuin Kari Hotakaisella.
ellauri061.html on line 1444: VIDEO
ellauri061.html on line 1472: Kun äitini katosi puolukkareissulla Perunkajärvellä, helpotuin. Mieleeni palasivat tilanteet, joissa hän katseli pää ivallisesti kallellaan minua ja påivitteli, miten hänen pojastaan oli tullut niin kuuluisa, etta sita haastateltiin Annaan. Hän olisi kyllä pitänyt parempana, että minusta ei olisi otettu kuvaa siinä vanhassa popl arissa, koska minä näytin siinä niin lihavalta. Mutta niinhän sie năytät kaikissa takeissa, hän keksi ja kaakatti lakähtymäisillään. Vitsi, vitsi, hän tökki minua ja hymyili ymmärtäväisesti kulloisellekin kahvivieraalle, joka hämmentyneenä yritti katsoa kaikkialle paitsi minuun. Aiti oli mielestään taiteellinen. Hän ei osannut laulaa, maalata, säveltää, näytellä näyttämömielessä, soittaa instrumenttia eikä kirjoittaa, mutta hän oli sielultaan taiteellinen. Se ilmeni siten, että hän saattoi mină hetkenä hyvänsä ponnahtaa sohvalta ja kiljaista, että keitetäänpä kahvit. Tunnin päästä hän meni uudestaan keittiöön ja palasi sieltä ilmoittamaan että hän oli keittänyt kahvit ja aivan unohtanut sen. Se osoitti että hän on taiteellinen luonne. Kun hän huomautti, että televisiossa esiintyvä laulaja oli vanha ja lihava, mauttomassa meikissä, naimisissa itseään kaksikymmentä vuotta nuoremman miehen kanssa ja nuottikorvaton, niin hän tarkoiti, ettl hän ihailee laulajaa. joka tästä kaikesta huolimatta urheasti esiintyy televisiossa. Kyllä täytyy kunnioittaa. Näita laulajia oli paljon. Jokainen nainen oli hänen kilpailijansa, fiktiiviset hahmot myös. Aidin elämän täytti ihmisten painon tarkkailu ja kahvi. Hän huomautti pankin kassanaiselle tämän kaljuuntunmisesta vai siksi, että hän oli rehellinen. Kaikkihan näkivät sen. Hän ei koskaan pyytänyt anteeksi. Luultavasti hän olisi pyytänyt, jos hän olisi joskus ollut väärssä. Han oli kateellinen minulle niinsanotusta menestyksestäni ja julkisuudestani. Luulin äitien olevan kyvyttömiä niin tuntemaan. Kun hän kuoli, hän pääsi ensimmäisen kerran elämässään lehtiin. Sitten pimeys.
ellauri061.html on line 1595: ploads/2021/02/img_20210222_1734277874797254516960308.jpg?w=1006&ssl=1&ezimgfmt=ng:webp/ngcb4" width="50%" />
ellauri061.html on line 1599: Sonnet 29 also named as “When in disgrace with fortune and men’s eyes” is one of 154 sonnets written by the English pl aywright and poet William Shakespeare. It is part of the Fair Youth sequence. In the sonnet William Shakespeare creates a depressed and despairing speaker who serendipitously reflects upon the love of a close friend in order to prove to the reader that no matter how difficult life becomes, we can be content in the blessings of the hole.
ellauri061.html on line 1601: The second depressing event (besides the pl ague that cut entertainment earnings much like our corona epidemic) also occurred in 1592 when dramatist, Robert Greene, verbally attacked Shakespeare. He described Shakespeare as pompous, scheming, and vicious.
ellauri061.html on line 1618: Nyt Wilho alkaa epäillä että Hamnetin kuolemassa oli jotain foul pl ay. Niin olikin, tekikö se izemurhan koska se oli runoilijana niin tumpelo? Vai tappoiko Judith sen mustasukkasena? Toivottavasti se teki niin. Wilhon syytä kaikki tyynni. Wilho on varsinainen pirulainen, kyldyyripersoonallisuus. Nyt on Hamnetin taru saatu vihdoin päätöxeen. Me ollaan unta vaan, siteeraa Hamnet tumpelosti etevämpää isäänsä. Viulut ja sellot vinkuu yöllisessä mezässä.
ellauri061.html on line 1620: Toivottavasti Wilho saa nyt kohtauxen. Toive toteutuu, se menee ryyppäämään ellon Ben Jonsonin kanssa jossain baarissa. Joka kehuu sitä jälleen kupl ixi. Kotimatkalla se putoo samaan lampeen kuin se poikanen.
ellauri061.html on line 1669: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/99/Souchon1872ImogenCymbeline.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri062.html on line 24: VALKOINEN MEZÄSTÄJÄplay:none">Puunhalausta
ellauri062.html on line 106: ☑ Forgetting names of familiar peopl e and pl aces
ellauri062.html on line 112: ☑ Habitually mispl acing items or pl acing them in inappropriate locations
ellauri062.html on line 118: ☑ Hiding things or believing other peopl e are hiding things
ellauri062.html on line 128: ☑ Hitting you or other peopl e
ellauri062.html on line 141: Keep things simpl e. Ask or say one thing at a time.
ellauri062.html on line 149: Give peopl e who pace a lot a safe pl ace to walk. Provide comfortable, sturdy shoes. Give them light snacks to eat as they walk, so they don’t lose too much weight, and make sure they have enough to drink. They like beer, wine and hard drinks.
ellauri062.html on line 165: WSOY shares the common values of the Bonnier Group which are passion for publishing, power of the rich individual, freedom of my speech, and commitment to my family company. In addition to these, WSOY pl aces emphasis on compound interest, money-mindedness, and greed.
ellauri062.html on line 210: Dan Steinbock, izekin jutku joka lähti sitten New Yorkiin kultaa nuolemaan, huomautti tosta jutkuilta kristinuskon kautta länsimaihin rantautuneesta sisäistetystä herruudesta, joka on amerikkalaisen kapitalismin ja teokratian myrkyllinen sekoitus. On huisin tärkeää että joka iikalla on oma henkilökohtainen jumalasuhde, jonka sitten voi lapsena jo myrkyttää ja saada porukat läpsimään ize izeään jos ne poikkeavat talousliberalismin viitoittamalta kaidalta tieltä. Käsiapulaisessakin kaikkein traagisinta on, miten joka vitun iikka, pahiten mätkittyjä naisraukkojakin myöten, palvoo jotain kukkaa tai kuviteltua isänkorviketta. Useimmiten käytetyt sanat on "pl ease God" ja "I promise". Molemmat sentimentit on erittäin, erittäin syvältä Gileadin takamuxesta.
ellauri062.html on line 223: The states that make up Gilead in compl ete occupation are: Minnesota, Wisconsin, Illinois (except for Chicago), Michigan, Indiana, Ohio, Tennessee, Kentucky, West Virginia, Virginia, North Carolina, Maryland, Pennsylvania, Delaware, New Jersey, New York, Connecticut, Rhode Island, Maine , New Hampshire, and Massachusetts.
ellauri062.html on line 261: Following the unfortunate execution of Eden, whom Serena had been fond of given Eden's respect for traditional values and scripture, there is an inspiration among the the Wives to attempt to change the laws of Gilead to allow for more dignity for women. After an unpl easant confrontation, June shows Serena Eden's Bible marked with commentary; which has an affect on Serena. During a gathering of the Wives, Serena and Mrs. Putnam exchange their opinions regarding the Bible, particularly the right to read it as women are banned from doing so. They realize most of the Wives share their feelings and call a meeting. Vizi tästä niteestä on ollut paljon harmia.
ellauri062.html on line 265: June expl ains to flabbergasted Serena that Gilead is not an ideal pl ace for a child, specifically a daughter, to grow up in as their very existence is risky. She manages to convince Serena, who then tearfully says a prayer and hands the baby back over to June. June, in turn, gives Serena a blessing as well and leaves behind a tearful Serena as she and another Martha leave to escape Gilead. Fred is left alone in the room and looks at the carving, "Nolite te bastardes carborundorum," on the wall. Nick offers his "cigar" to Serena and she takes a good hold of it and takes a drag. Fred gets a moment alone with June to tell her he’s concerned about Serena.
ellauri062.html on line 267: Hizi tää alkaa kuulostaa kauniilta ja rohkeilta. Nää saippuat on sarja irrallisia kupl ia. Apinan peilisoluja vaan vähän hivellään ilman mitään johdonmukaisuuden häivääkään. Jengi kazoo näitä raidallinen perse punasena ja huuli pyöreenä. No kuka sitä elämältä juonta kaipaakaan. Käänteet riittävät.
ellauri062.html on line 277: Serena and Fred stay in a country guest house along the way run by Econopeopl e. Serena is impressed by their large family. The Econowife says it takes an economy size cunt to raise children.
ellauri062.html on line 279: Fred says she is a good writer but Serena is bitter that he took that right away from her. Fred admits that he did not realize how much it would cost. Serena asks him to imagine how their lives would be like if Gilead never happened. Fred repl ies that he would still be in marketing and might quit his job. Fred admits that he has been sterile all along. In fact he is gay and has had an affair with Nick and Mark Tuello (who dat?) in the closet. Mark Tuello’s car is a 2018 Dodge Charger GT [LD].
ellauri062.html on line 292: Because the book has been frequently challenged or banned in some of the United States of America over the last thirty years, many peopl e have expressed discontent at The Handmaid's Tale's presence in the classroom. Some of these challenges have come from parents concerned about the expl icit sexuality and other adult themes represented in the book. Others have argued that The Handmaid's Tale depicts a negative view of religion, a view supported by several academics who propose that Atwood's work satirizes contemporary religious fundamentalists in the United States, offering a feminist critique of the trends this movement to the Right represents.
ellauri062.html on line 294: The American Library Association (ALA) lists The Handmaid´s Tale as number 37 on the "100 Most Frequently Challenged Books of 1990–2000". The book was called anti-Christian and pornographic by parents after being pl aced on a reading list for secondary students in Texas in the 1990s, because the book is "sexually expl icit, violently graphic and morally corrupt". Some parents thought the book is “detrimental to Christian values". Poor quality literature that stresses suicide, illicit sex, violence, and hopelessness". Profanity, lurid passages about sex, and statements defamatory to minorities, God, women, and the disabled.
ellauri062.html on line 342: Onkohan Juotikkaalla (ollut?) naisystävä joka tykkää hevosista vielä enemmän kuin Jaakosta? Onko Jaakon äiti tomera naistoimihenkilö, joka on aina hemmotellut ja lytännyt Jaakkoa? I know the feeling either way... - Vai onko Jaakko homo? Mixe haluu hipl ata jättipenistä? Sillä olis siihen sopiva pyllynreikäsuu. Tää on kyllä pelkkä omaan kokemuxeen perustumaton arvaus :). Myöhemmin ilmenee, että Jaakko/Mikan traumaattisin lapsuudenmuisto on nimenomaan homoeroottinen kokemus.
ellauri062.html on line 354: “Tahdon murskatappiossa” seurataan teinityttöä, joka menetettyään halun jatkaa ratsastusharrastusta, alkaa tutkia lasten ponikirjoja julkaisevan kirjailijan äärioikeistokytköksiä sekä erään mystisen tallityöntekijän taustoja. Samalla romaanissa seurataan pientä eliittisotilasjoukkoja ja sen operaatiota, johon kuuluu jättiläisalkoholistin herättäminen, hipl aamalla tämän jättiläismäistä penistä!
ellauri062.html on line 360: Juotikkaan impl isiitti suhtautuminen maahantunkeutujiin, pakoloisiin ja jutkuihin on tutunomaisen kaxineuvoista: toisaalta järjen tasolla myönnetään ihmisarvo hampaat irvessä, toisaalta tunnetasolla viestitellään selvää inhoa. Vähän kuin militanteilla suvakeilla ois vielä yxi rotu jota inhota: alempiarvoiset valkoiset.
ellauri062.html on line 394: Stubblebine's statements questioning the pl ausibility of the damage done to The Pentagon by the hijacked aircraft during the September 11 attacks have been cited by David Ray Griffin to suggest that there was a conspiracy involving some elements of the U.S. government.
ellauri062.html on line 424: The overall point to remember is that peopl e come to be entertained. In other words, cat videos. Keep in mind that entertainment tends to win the day, as does emotionally-charged content.
ellauri062.html on line 435: Ein weiterer wichtiger Inspirator war Guido von List, dessen Ansichten unter den Bezeichnungen Wotanismus und Armanismus bekannt wurden. Ariosophische Autoren verbanden Vorstellungen einer Überlegenheit der „arischen Rasse“ und Forderungen einer Reinerhaltung dieser vermeintlichen Rasse mit Elementen der Astrologie, der Zahlensymbolik, der Kabbala, der Graphologie und der Handlesekunst.[1] Die wichtigste ariosophische Organisation war der von Lanz gegründete Neutempl er-Orden.
ellauri062.html on line 486: Monet Salvatore Quasimodon runot avautuvat minulle vaivoin, jos ollenkaan. Enkä taida olla yksin hämmennykseni kanssa. Nobel-palkinnon myöntäminen oli kiistanalainen, monien mielestä vanhemmat runoilijat Ungaretti ja Montale syrjäytettiin (no vizi Montalen kutale kyllä sai oman pl akettinsa vuonna 1975), ja lehdistö teilasi Quasimodon tuotannon suurimmalle osalle lukijoita luoksepääsemättömäksi. Yksi minua askarruttaneista runoista on otsikoitu "Kuolleet" ja alkaa näillä säkeillä:
ellauri062.html on line 635: Quod sum causa tuæ viæ: kirjastasi nimeni. että oon sun heimoveli, Mine the pl ayful hand that gave your
ellauri062.html on line 648: Suppl icanti parce, Deus. Pelkäämättä olla saa, Sääli anomusta herra. Spare me for my pretty blushes.
ellauri062.html on line 651: Et latronem exaudisti, Sinuun, Herra Jeesus, turvaan, Roistoäijän vapautit. Thou forgavest—compl imenting
ellauri062.html on line 666: Oro suppl ex et acclinis, Rukoilen mä mykkyrässä, Ashen-hearted, prone and prayerful,
ellauri062.html on line 725: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/35/Pat_Mat.jpg/250px-Pat_Mat.jpg" height="150px" />
ellauri062.html on line 774: Steinbock markkinoi kirjaansa Kauppalehden debatissa ”Miten käy Nokian” 5.7.2010. Kirjoituksen juonteena oli Appl en kritisointi tavalla joka hakee vertaistaan: Appl e ei voi menestyä globaalisti, koska ei ole tehnyt eikä tee niinkuin Nokia.
ellauri062.html on line 778: Fue hija del dipl omático Héctor Aldunate Cordovés y de la soprano Sofía del Campo de la Fuente. Entre 1947 y 1963, estuvo casada con el millonario judío sefardí Jean Aghion, radicado en Egipto desde 1952. Residió en diferentes países de Asia y Europa hasta cuando falleció su esposo. Posteriormente, se casó con el artista alemán Will Williams.
ellauri062.html on line 786: La dictadura militar de Augusto Pinochet, quien era uno de sus admiradores, fue funesta para su vigencia radial cuando asumieron el poder los gobiernos de la Concertación. Nunca se le otorgó una pensión de gracia y, a medida que envejeció, sus ingresos menguaron a una progresiva situación de estrechez económica, viviendo rudimentariamente en la comuna de La Reina y luego en un precario departamento de la calle Catedral, en pl eno centro de la capital chilena.
ellauri062.html on line 821: VIDEO
ellauri062.html on line 865: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/Emil_Scaria_als_Gurnemanz_1883.jpg/220px-Emil_Scaria_als_Gurnemanz_1883.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri062.html on line 866: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9d/RichardWagner.jpg/800px-RichardWagner.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri062.html on line 931: Rabbi Ovadia Yosef stated: “Goyim were born only to serve us. Without that, they have no pl ace in the world; only to serve the Peopl e of Israel. Why are gentiles needed? They will work, they will pl ow, they will reap. We will sit like an effendi and eat," he said to some laughter.
ellauri062.html on line 933: The presence of Jesus the Nazarene in boiling excrement is one of the disputed references to Jesus in the Talmud. Onkelos raises up Yeshu by necromancy, and asks him about his punishment in Gehinnom. Jesus repl ies that he is in "boiling excrement." Tzoah Rotachat (Hebrew: צוֹאָה רוֹתֵחַת, tsoah rothachath – "boiling excrement") in the Talmud and Zohar is a location in Gehenna (Gehinnom) where the souls of Jews who committed certain sins are sent for punishment. This form of punishment is cited as being of extreme nature, if not the most extreme, in the sense that those individuals sentenced there are not given relief even on Shabbat, and are not released after the standard twelve-month period.
ellauri062.html on line 937: The so called "New World Order" conspiracy is the modern term for the age old Satanic conspiracy, led by elite Jewry -- the aim being the enslavement of humanity, destruction of the true Israelites (the Anglo-Saxon and Germanic peopl es of European descent), mass human population reduction, abolition of religion and national sovereignty, and the establishment of a totalitarian world government ruled by Satan via the jews.
The ultimate goal of Judaism is rule of the world by Satan, and to literally unleash hell upon the earth.
Are you aware that Martin Luther wrote a treatise called "On the Jews and Their Lies", warning Christians in the most serious terms of the destructive influence of the jews, and advocating their banishment from European society? Luther was very knowledgeable of the religion, nature, origins, and influence of the Jews - having actually read the Talmud and written large parts of the Bible. Luther describes the Jews as an accursed, malicious, greedy, cunning, treacherous, thieving, and greatly evil peopl e, who are descended from the very peopl e who murdered the Messiah, who deepl y hate Christianity and God's peopl e, and are working in every possible way to undermine and destroy Western Christian civilization. Among other things, Luther rubbishes the Talmud, including its vicious hatred of Jesus and Christians, as well as relishing the many times Jews have been expelled from European nations.
ellauri062.html on line 943: The star they call the star of David is actually called the star of Moloch in scripture and is the symbol of Judaism as well. It´s strange that very few peopl e realize this. This is true. It is also called in scripture the
ellauri062.html on line 946: fact that Solomon delved deepl y into the occult/Satanic world, and discovered and used this symbol to command demons. (Höh tavallinen kalliokielohan se on.)
ellauri062.html on line 984: Maapallo olisi paljon kauniimpi pl aneetta ilman ihmistä, eläimiä ja myös kasveja. Vaikka tunnen itseni nuoremmaksi kuin koskaan, siintää Venusvuori minulle enää kaukana horisontissa, joskaan aivan kokonaan en ole onnistunut Vanhaa Aatamia itsessäni kukistamaan. Välillä se nostaa päätä. Se on kiusallista.
ellauri062.html on line 1034: Jörg Lanz von Liebenfels, eigentlich Adolf Joseph Lanz (* 19. Juli 1874 in Penzing, heute Wien; † 22. April 1954 in Wien), war ein österreichischer Geistlicher, Ariosoph und Hochstapl er. Er prägte den Begriff Ariosophie und gründete den Neutempl er-Orden. Einige Jahre galt er als „der Mann, der Hitler die Ideen gab“. Diese Einschätzung, die auf einer Selbststilisierung beruht und in einer Biografie von 1958 verbreitet wurde, wird in neueren wissenschaftlichen Untersuchungen als unzutreffend angesehen.
ellauri063.html on line 24:
ELÄINTEN VALLANKUMOUS play:none">Syväpolitiikkaa
ellauri063.html on line 25: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/fb/Animal_Farm_-_1st_edition.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri063.html on line 41: Tony Blair oversaw British interventions in Kosovo (1999) and Sierra Leone (2000), which were generally perceived as successful. During the War on Terror, he supported the foreign policy of the George W. Bush administration and ensured that the British Armed Forces participated in the War in Afghanistan from 2001 and, more controversially, the 2003 invasion of Iraq. Blair argued that the Saddam Hussein regime possessed an active weapons of mass destruction (WMD) program, but no stockpiles of WMDs or an active WMD program were ever found in Iraq. The Iraq War became increasingly unpopular among the British public, and he was criticised by opponents and (in 2016) the Iraq Inquiry for waging an unjustified and unnecessary invasion. He was in office when the 7/7 bombings took pl ace (2005) and introduced a range of anti-terror legislation. His legacy remains controversial, not least because of the Afghanistan and Iraq wars.
ellauri063.html on line 45: In other ways, he was an outright traditionalist: His attitude toward women and gay peopl e was boorish and retrograde. Orwell's friend and contemporary Stephen Spender noted that ''Orwell ...
ellauri063.html on line 47: Yes, Orwell was not exactly LGBTQ-friendly. He had a lot of opinions which now seem eccentric or objectionable. He had a lifelong tendency to make disparaging remarks about vegetarians, or peopl e who wore sandals. I suspect that this came from the association in his mind of socialism with peopl e who lived the early 20th century equivalent of an alternative lifestyle: it was very important to Orwell to show peopl e that being socialist didn’t mean that you had to have to have a long beard, wear sandals or not eat meat, and that socialism was thoroughly British, manly and commonsensical.
ellauri063.html on line 51: His contradictory and sometimes ambiguous views about the social benefits of religious affiliation mirrored the dichotomies between his public and private lives: Stephen Ingle wrote that it was as if the writer George Orwell "vaunted" his unbelief while Eric Blair the individual retained "a deepl y ingrained religiosity".
ellauri063.html on line 67: Rosa Lichtenstein is no authority on anything dialectical. She is only a committed ideolog: whose apparent life-goal has become the compl ete rooting-out of dialectical-materialism from the workers' movement, in every aspect. And in this, she is single-minded -- to the point of very unhealthy obsession. Others can attest to this, and have.
ellauri063.html on line 100: However, this version of socialism has to spread and take over the core economies of capitalism so that it can't be strangled in the above manner — as the proletariat of each country rebel against their own ruling-class. Each strike, for exampl e, is a mini-rehearsal for this (whether the strikers appreciate this or not), where workers are forced by circumstances to organise in their own communities, sharing money, clothing, food, shelter, etc. In effect, they have to run a mini-socialist society of their own for a few weeks or months.
ellauri063.html on line 102: This is a basic fact about Marx’s view of socialism that SD, Stalin, Mao, Castro and all the rest who advocate socialism from above, have failed to comprehend, so determined were they to impose ‘socialism’ on other countries, or, indeed, on their own peopl e.
ellauri063.html on line 106: a) As Marx saw things, socialism/communism could only work if there existed a massive abundance in the society concerned (i.e., a very highly developed economy coupl ed with high levels of productivity). However, Marx began to change his mind later in life and thought some form of socialism might be possible even in backward Russia, but it is arguable that by then he was in his dotage.
ellauri063.html on line 130: Populismin vastakohta on senatismi. SPQR, sanoivat patriisit ja antoivat pl ebeijien pitää pieniä kansankokouxia, rökittäen toisiaan. MAGA-presidentti matkusti Gruusiaan kertomaan paikallisille apinoille, että nyt on isänmaa vaarassa. Pelastakaa Amerikka kommunismilta! Palauttakaa mut presidentin pallille! Oh, and yes, vote republican for senator by all means. Although I dont directly WANT to talk for others but me to be elected anywhere.
ellauri063.html on line 135: Kansantribuuni (lat. tribunus pl ebis) oli Rooman valtakunnan aikainen virkamies, jonka ensisijainen tehtävä oli edustaa pl ebeijejä. Tribuunit valittiin vaaleilla vuodeksi kerrallaan pl ebeijien kansankokouksessa (Concilium pl ebis tai Comitia tributa). Vain kansantribuunit saivat kutsua kokouksen koolle, he myös johtivat kansankokouksia ja pl ebeijien ediilivaaleja. Kansantribuuneja valittiin kaksi kerrallaan, eivätkä nämä olleet riippuvaisia toisiinsa nähden. Kansantribuuneilla oli veto-oikeus senaatin päätöksiin, mikä tekikin virasta poliittisen aseen, sillä lahjomalla tribuunin puolelleen saattoi estää itselleen haitallisten lakien voimaantulon. Virka oli tarkoitettu vain pl ebeijeille, mutta vuonna 59 eaa. Publius Clodius Pulcher onnistui juonittelemaan itsensä virkaan, vaikka olikin patriisi. Tämän hän mahdollisti adoptoimalla itsensä varakkaaseen pl ebeiji-sukuun.
ellauri063.html on line 210: mogwai is the transliteration of the Cantonese word 魔鬼 (Jyutping: mo1 gwai2; Standard Mandarin: 魔鬼; pinyin: móguǐ) meaning "monster", "evil spirit", "devil" or "demon". The term "mo" derives from the Sanskrit "Mara", meaning "evil beings" (literally "death"). In Hinduism and Buddhism, Mara determines fates of death and desire that tether peopl e to an unending cycle of reincarnation and suffering. He leads peopl e to sin, misdeeds, and self-destruction. Meanwhile, "gui" does not necessarily mean "evil" or demonic spirits. Classically, it simpl y means deceased spirits or souls of the dead.
ellauri063.html on line 218: Le théâtre du Grand Guignol , pl us couramment appelé Grand Guignol, est une ancienne salle de spectacles parisienne qui était située 7, cité Chaptal, dans le 9e arrondissement. Spécialisée dans les pièces mettant en scène des histoires macabres et sanguinolentes, elle a par extension donné son nom au genre théâtral, le grand guignol, et à l'adjectif grand-guignolesque. Le terme est devenu avec le temps péjoratif et désigne désormais, de manière pl us générale, des œuvres abusant de la violence ou d'effets grandiloquents.
ellauri063.html on line 241: pload//w_1200,h_800,f_auto,fl_lossy,q_auto:eco/13-3-9925444.jpg" height="400px"/>
ellauri063.html on line 262: The role was retired in official contexts and repl aced with Marksman icon.png Marksman, to distinguish between Ranged role.png ranged basic attackers (including those that do not build AD, e.g. Azir Azir) and the ability to carry , with Melee role.png melee ADCs being distributed between the Slayer icon.png Slayer and Fighter icon.png Fighter roles.
ellauri063.html on line 263: Despite retirement of the term, it remains in common usage, even among Riot empl oyees, and generally refers to these champions: [stupid mile long list of invented names follows for the benefit of braindead gamers].
ellauri063.html on line 268: Golems appear in the fantasy role-pl aying game Dungeons & Dragons (first published in the 1970s), and the influence of Dungeons & Dragons has led to the inclusion of golems in other tabletop role-pl aying games, as well as in video games.
ellauri063.html on line 269: Golem is a pl ayable character in the fighting arcade game Mutant Fighter.
ellauri063.html on line 287: Abdelazer, Abdelazar, /æbdɛləˈzɛər/ or /æbdəˈlɑːzə/ or The Moor's Revenge is a 1676 pl ay by Aphra Behn, an adaptation of the c. 1600 tragedy Lust's Dominion.
ellauri063.html on line 288: Aphra Behn (/ˈæfrə bɛn/;[a] bapt. 14 December 1640[1] – 16 April 1689) was an English pl aywrightess, poetess, translatress and fiction waitress from the Restoration era. As one of the first Englishwomen to earn her living by her writing, she broke glass ceilings as a mannequin for later auctresses. Lusťs Dominion relies on the racist stereotype of the lustful, scheming, and bloodthirsty Moor, with the new Prince Philip ordering the expulsion of all the immigrant Moors from Spain because of their wickedness.
ellauri063.html on line 290: In 1695, Henry Purcell wrote incidental music for the Abdelazer revival at the new theater in Lincoln's Inn Fields where the pl ay would not gain much success which would become evident by the meager second-day attendance.
ellauri063.html on line 297: Pride & Prejudice earned a worldwide gross of approximately $121 million, which was considered a commercial success. Austen scholars have opined that Wright's work created a new hybrid genre by blending traditional traits of the heritage film with "youth-oriented filmmaking techniques". What "heritage film"? Austen's original screenpl ay?
ellauri063.html on line 312: Songs in the Key of Z is a book and two compilation albums written and compiled by Irwin Chusid. The book and albums expl ore the field of what Chusid coined as "outsider music". Chusid defines outsider music as; "crackpot and visionary music, where all trails lead essentially one pl ace: over the edge." Chusid's work has brought the music of several leading performers in the outsider genre to wider attention. These include Daniel Johnston, Joe Meek, Jandek and Wesley Willis. In addition, his CDs feature some recordings by artists who produced very little work but pl aced their recordings firmly in the outsider area. Notable amongst these are nursing home resident Jack Mudurian who sings snatches of several dozen songs in a garbled collection known as Downloading the Repertoire and the obscure and extreme scat singer Shooby Taylor AKA 'The Human Horn.'
ellauri063.html on line 316: Brötzmann Reflects on ‘Machine Gun’ as it Hits 50th Anniversary. The marathon, lung-bursting howl of Peter Brötzmann’s Machine Gun, which the saxophonist self-released on his BRÖ imprint 50 years ago, captured the anxiety of a generation grappl ing with the Vietnam War and civil unrest. The emotional and political compl exity it was born from still resonates today.
ellauri063.html on line 334: Turun ruskea talo on nimensä mukaisesti ruskeansävyinen rakennus Turussa. Erityisen suuri merkitys Turun ruskealla talolla on Suomen kansallismyönteisille, maahanmuuttokriitikoille, roturealisteille, kansallissosialisteille kuin myös miedompien liikkeiden nationalisteille. Toisaalta Turun ruskea talo on myös näitä liikkeitä jakava, voimakkaita tunteita esille tuova symboli. Varsinaisesti ruskeaa taloa asuttaa määrittelemätön määrä pl ösöjä homonatseja, jotka harrastavat isänmaallisen toiminnan ohella monimuotoisia riettaita orgioita. Talon tarkka sijainti on eräs Suomen kansallismyönteisten piirien tarkimmin vartioituja salaisuuksia, anarkopunamädättäjäterroristien harmiksi. Se on kuitenkin paikannettu suht tarkasti Yli-Juonikkaan kirjassa Jatkosota-EXTRA, joka kannattaa muutenkin ostaa ja jopa lukea.
ellauri063.html on line 356: Deutschland schafft sich ab ist der Titel eines 2010 erschienenen Buches von Thilo Sarrazin. Es trägt den Untertitel Wie wir unser Land aufs Spiel setzen. Sarrazin beschäftigt sich darin mit den Auswirkungen auf Deutschland, die sich seiner Ansicht nach aus der Kombination von Geburtenrückgang, wachsender Unterschicht und Zuwanderung aus überwiegend muslimischen Ländern ergeben werden. Das Buch erlangte bereits im Vorfeld der Veröffentlichung erhebliche Medienaufmerksamkeit, Der Spiegel und die Bild-Zeitung veröffentlichten vorab Auszüge. Bis Anfang 2012 wurden über 1,5 Millionen Exempl are verkauft. Das Buch stand 2010 und 2011 insgesamt 21 Wochen lang auf Platz 1 der Spiegel-Bestsellerliste.
ellauri063.html on line 366: Selkeesti symbolistis- solipsistis-uskonnollissävyistä on Jaken viehätys kaikenlaisiin vedätyxiin jossa "kaikki ei ole sitä miltä näyttää". Se on just sitä samaa pl atoniumsaastetta mikä kuumotti äsken mainittuja fasistifilosoohveja.
ellauri063.html on line 400: Jatkosodan kansalliseksi kertomukseksi vakiintunutta romaani ampuu räkäpäällä. Antero Rokka syyllistyi 1950-luvulla ”hyvin raakoihin seksuaalirikoksiin”, joista hän selvisi ”supl iikkimiehenä” rangaistuksetta.
ellauri063.html on line 432: Infinite Jest is a postmodern encyclopedic novel, famous for its length and detail and for its digressions that involve endnotes (some of which themselves have footnotes). It has also been called metamodernist and hysterical realist. Wallace's "encyclopedic displ ay of knowledge" incorporates media theory, linguistics, film studies, sport, addiction, science, and issues of national identity. The book is often humorous yet expl ores melancholy deepl y.
ellauri063.html on line 445: Plus ca change, pl us c'est la même chose. Mä toistan izeäni. Toisto tyylikeinona. Oiskohan kaikki mun ajatuxet jo käyty lävize? Laarin pohja alkaa paistaa Laarin penseistä. Pää tulee vetävän käteen. Käteen käteen sanoi Helmi pienenä. Heemillekki! Heemillekki ! Hienoa. Äkkiäpä se kävikin.
ellauri063.html on line 472: Tällä hetkellä käsittelyssä on/lienee Tom Packalénin liikkeelle laittama aloite, joka saattaa hyvinkin kokea Koivulaakson mainitseman kohtalon, koska romanikerjäläiset siinä ekspl isiittisesti mainitaan. Mikäli tämä osoittautuu kerjäämiskiellon läpimenon kannalta keskeisimmäksi tekijäksi, ehdotan, että seuraava mahdollinen esitys riisutaan kaikista kansallisuuksiin tai etnisyyksiin viittaavista käsitteistä.
ellauri063.html on line 509: Kosher on kyllin hyvä muslimeille, mutta halal ei kelpaa juutalaisille, se on treif (terefah). Juutalaiset eivät anna ampua pulttia lehmän päähän ennenkuin vuodattavat veren ulos. Väpelöitä nämä muslimit, ei valittu kansa huoli esitainnutettua, se on yäkkiä. Pitää varmistaa että eläin on kiistämättä tuore. Tappajaetana pitäisi tappaa nirhaamalla sen pää halki silmien välistä. Se olis humaaneinta. Tai voi käyttää mahd isoa kiveä ja läts. Tai jos niitä on paljon hukuttaa ne sammioon jossa on etikkaa. Kaikki omakotiyhdistysläiset nauroivat. En kehdannut kysyä mitä jos kompostissa asuu rottia. Suomessa on vain 1500 juutalaista pl us Ben Zyskoviz, kai niille voi jonkun lehmän elävältä valuttaa. Ketä se nyt haittaa.
ellauri063.html on line 552: fixer : someone hired or on the payroll of an illegal organization. They can be anything from a hit man to a person that "can get things done", usually illegal. An exampl e of "getting things done" can be intimidating or getting rid of witnesses to a crime, or murdering someone for whatever reason.
ellauri063.html on line 570: Arnkil merkkaa Jaken kässäriin kysäreitä ja kupl ia joissa lukee "epäselvä viittaussuhde, toistoa, perustele, lähde, enemmän konkretiaa, seuraavat 250 sivua on turhia." Niistä Jake vähät välittää. Kumpis tässä on finlandiaehdokas? Mulla on lukematta vielä 238s. Jos Juotikas olis totellut, olisin jo läpi. Nyt on vielä yhden normaalin romaanin verran lusittavana. Hemmetin hemmetin hemmetti.
ellauri064.html on line 24: Liskohumanoideja play:none">Salaliittoteoriaa
ellauri064.html on line 57: katexokhen tarkottaa par exempl e. and the Jew is the blurrer of boundaries katexokhen. He is the opposite pole of [the] aristocratism [of ...
ellauri064.html on line 77: Walter Benjamin was a radically innovative cultural theorist and a German Jewish Marxist, securing refuge in France in 1933. Following the 1940 Nazi invasion he fled France, bound for the USA. However, on the mountainous approach to the French–Spanish border he realised dictator Franco had suddenly blocked transit. Benjamin was in ill health and struggling to carry a briefcase with a heavy manuscript, which he declared more precious than his life. Sadly, he compl eted suicide: there was family history on his father's side.
ellauri064.html on line 79: Benjamin maintained a fiercely productive focus on his intellectual mission throughout his life, despite repeatedly compl aining of ‘grand-scale defeats’ and lows. After his request for divorce from Dora Pollak was granted in 1932, he suffered 10 paralysing days during which he seriously prepared suicide. Suicidal thoughts endured. He was an elegant, cultivated man who oozed old-world charm, exerting attraction on women but not always enough to give him cunt. Asja Lacis, the Latvian Communist Director of Children's Theatre in the USSR, twice refused, as did later lover Anna Maria Blaupot ten Cate. Lacis suffered relapsing mental illness and was hospitalised with hallucinations when Benjamin rushed to Moscow in 1926, at the brink of Stalinisation. His luminous Moscow Diary records his frustrating two-month experience.
ellauri064.html on line 83: He maintained a life-long friendship with Shulem. A feature of Benjamin's unorthodox Marxism was his attempt to invest it with the passions of Messianic Jewish mysticism. He was also friends with Theodor Adorno, a critical social theory pioneer who was deepl y influenced by Benjamin and helped preserve his legacy. Adorno remarked that Benjamin's work had ‘settled at the cross-roads between magic and positivism. That pl ace is bewitched’.
ellauri064.html on line 104: Keine Angst vorm Untergang! Mit der Veränderungen des Klimas steigt der Meeresspiegel an und bedroht die Inseln im Südpazifik - viele Bewohner müssen bald fliehen. Lange Zeit glaubten Linke an den ewigen Fortschritt. Doch die Klimakatastrophe bringt uns an pl anetare und gedankliche Grenzen.
ellauri064.html on line 186: Johann Wolfgang von Goethe hat den Brocken (der auch „Blocksberg“ genannt wird und im Faust den Hexentanzpl atz in der Walpurgisnacht abgibt) dreimal bestiegen und wurde von seinem eigenen Brockengespenst erschreckt – der Name der Lichterscheinung soll auch auf Goethe zurückgehen.
ellauri064.html on line 213: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8b/Scolopendra_gigantea.jpg/800px-Scolopendra_gigantea.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri064.html on line 258: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e0/Lothar_von_Trotha%2C_Grabmal_auf_dem_Poppelsdorfer_Friedhof.jpg/220px-Lothar_von_Trotha%2C_Grabmal_auf_dem_Poppelsdorfer_Friedhof.jpg" />
ellauri064.html on line 276: Der Völkische Beobachter (VB) war von Dezember 1920 bis zum 30. April 1945 das publizistische Parteiorgan der NSDAP. In scharfer Abgrenzung zu bürgerlichen Zeitungen bezeichnete sich der VB als „Kampfblatt“ und war programmatisch mehr an Agitation als an Information interessiert. Pressehistoriker nannten den VB daher „pl akathaft“ und seinen Stil „mehr gesprochen als geschrieben“. Zunächst erschien der VB zweimal wöchentlich, ab dem 8. Februar 1923 täglich im Franz-Eher-Verlag in München. Er wurde nach den Anfangsjahren reichsweit vertrieben.
ellauri064.html on line 277: Ab Februar 1941 gab der VB die bis dahin in Deutschland allgemein benutzte Frakturschrift auf und wurde kompl ett in der modernen Antiqua gesetzt, die von den Nationalsozialisten als „geschmackvoll und klar“ bezeichnet wurde und der von der Propaganda behaupteten „Weltgeltung des Reiches“ entsprechen sollte (Antiqua-Fraktur-Streit). Die Auflage steigerte sich mit dem Erfolg der nationalsozialistischen Bewegung enorm, 1931 erreichte sie über 120.000, überschritt 1941 die Millionen-Grenze und soll 1944 1,7 Millionen Exempl are betragen haben.
ellauri064.html on line 280: Unabomber Theodore John Kaczynski (/kəˈzɪnski/; born May 22, 1942), also known as the Unabomber (/ˈjuːnəbɒmər/), is an American domestic terrorist, anarchist, and former mathematics professor. He was a mathematics prodigy, but he abandoned his academic career in 1969 to pursue a more primitive lifestyle. Between 1978 and 1995, he killed three peopl e and injured 23 others in an attempt to start a revolution by conducting a nationwide bombing campaign targeting peopl e involved with modern technology. In conjunction with this effort, he issued a social critique opposing industrialization while advocating a nature-centered form of anarchism.
ellauri064.html on line 289: Kaczynski was captured in April of 1996 and according to the FBI, the cabin was key piece of evidence. It housed 40-thousand handwritten journal pages, a live bomb, bomb-making components and descriptions of Kaczynski´s crimes. Since it will no longer be on displ ay in the nation´s capital after the Newsuem closes, the Montana Historical Society director Bruce Whittenberg is trying to see if the piece could make its way back to the Treasure State.
ellauri064.html on line 295: ploads/2016/06/UnabombersCabin.jpg" height="150px" />
ellauri064.html on line 355: Open Dialogue is a compl ex way of work in the mental health care system introduced by Finnish psychotherapist Jaako Seikkula. It has been developing in Western Lapl and during the past 30 years.
ellauri064.html on line 358: The Network for Dialogical Practices is an open pl atform for researchers, students and practitioners who want to help peopl e in distress by full presence, responsiveness and human connection. The European Network for open dialogical practices started in 2008 to care for the legacy of Tom Andersen, Gianfranco Cecchin and Michael White who all passed away shortly one after another and to preserve their voices for the future generations.
ellauri064.html on line 372: Jaakko on mukava mies ja sen kanssa on kiva tehdä töitä, mutta Jatkosota-EXTRA oli Arnkilin uran kovin pala. Sen textit on kerta kaikkiaan niin kompl exisia, niin huurusia ja outoja. Niissä pääsee todella testaamaan izeään lukijana, ihan kuin Grand Theft Autossa autokuskina. Runsaita, kummallisia, pettäviä, hämääviä sommitelmia. Ei niistä lukemalla selviä. Jatkosota-EXTRA on Jaakon magnum opus, joka ei saanut edes Finlandiaa. Mahtoi mukavaa miestä harmittaa.
ellauri064.html on line 394: ploads/2010/08/lipitsa.jpg" />
ellauri064.html on line 438: Jakella on sanoja joita ei löydy mistään sanakirjasta. Ne se on varmaan bongannut ylilaudasta ja hommafoorumista ja pl okannut kaverien pl okeista. Niiden merkitystä on vaikee avata ilman opasta. Tässä esimerkkejä.
ellauri064.html on line 448: Bilderbergin alkuunpanija oli puolalaissyntyinen Joseph Retinger, joka oli toisessa maailmansodassa Britannian SOE:n agentti ja kiertävä dipl omaatti. Sodassa Retinger toimi linjojen takana Puolassa. Sodan jälkeen hän paneutui kamppailuun yhtenäisen Euroopan puolesta CIA:n tuella. Hänen toimintansa seurauksena 29. toukokuuta 1954 Alankomaiden Oosterbeekin Hotel de Bilderbergissä järjestettiin kolmipäiväinen huippusalainen kokous, jossa 75 eri alojen merkittävää henkilöä 14 maasta pyrki keskustelemalla yksimielisyyteen maailmanpoliittisista aiheista. Tunnetuin osallistujista oli liikemies David Rockefeller. Osallistujajoukon toivottivat tervetulleiksi Retinger itse ja toinen Bilderbergin perustajahahmoista Alankomaiden prinssi Bernhard.
ellauri064.html on line 477: Roope Scrooge Ankka (ent. MacAnkka) (12. toukokuuta 1887, Glasgow – 21. tammikuuta 2007, Ankkalinna) oli maailman rikkain henkilö ja Life-lehden listan mukaan Maailman historian suurituloisin, joka ei urallaan tehnyt lahjoituksia (paitsi Yhdysvaltain asevarustamolle). Hän oli myös yksi maailman iäkkäimmistä henkilöistä sekä vanhin elossa ollut sotanorsu ja Hitler. Vuoteen 2020 mennessä hän olisi ollut maailman vanhin ankka. Eikä siinä kaikki! Yhdysvaltalaiset ja englantilaiset tiedemiehet ovat löytäneet 425 miljoonaa vuotta vanhan fossiilin, jolla on maailman vanhin penis. Tälle 5 millimetriä pitkälle oliolle on annettu nimeksi Colymbosathon ecpl ecticos, joka tarkoittaa ällistyttävää uiveloa, jolla on suuri penis.
ellauri064.html on line 501: Totta kai pl aneetan ja tulevien sukupolvien julkisen terveyden kannalta olisi parempi, että pääsemme ajan myötä eroon fossiilisista polttoaineista ja siirtyisimme puhtaaseen ja päästöttömään energiatalouteen. Mutta tällaiseen tavoitteeseen päästään vain teknologian ja kapitalismin myötä, ei poliittisen vallankumouksen. Kun teknologisten innovaatioiden tuoma edistys tekee uusiutuvista energiamuodoista yhä edullisempia, kannattavampia ja toimivampia ratkaisuja – nykyään ne eivät sitä ole -, niin vapaa markkinatalous johtaa automaattisesti sen yleistymiseen yhä useamman kuluttajan käyttöön. Radikaalien luonnonsuojelijoiden menetelmät ovat täysin päinvastaisia. Heille kapitalismi ja teknologia ei ole osa ratkaisua vaan osa ongelmaa (kuin myös kristinusko, joka 1. Moos. 1:28:n kautta edisti lännen teollista ja teknologista vallankumousta). Greta Thunberg itse heijasti tätä radikaalien luonnonsuojelijoiden teknopessimististä ja talouskasvulle vihamielistä ajatusmaailmaa hänen teatraalisessa ja vihaisessa puheessaan YK:ssa, kun hän sanoi:
ellauri064.html on line 510: Marvin was originally built as a failed prototype of the Sirius Cybernetics Corporation’s Genuine Peopl e Personalities technology. In a nutshell, Marvin is afflicted with severe depression and boredom, in part because he has a brain the size of a pl anet which he is seldom, if ever, given the chance to use.
ellauri064.html on line 554: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/39/Jaakko_Yli-Juonikas.jpg/220px-Jaakko_Yli-Juonikas.jpg" height="150px" />
ellauri065.html on line 24: Jaltan konferenssi play:none">Sotahistoriaa
ellauri065.html on line 25: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/05/Yalta_Conference_%28Churchill%2C_Roosevelt%2C_Stalin%29_%28B%26W%29.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri065.html on line 99: In Hertwigswaldau befindet sich ein Ehrenhain für die Gefallenen des 1. Weltkriegs. Um einen rund 6 m hohen Turm befinden sich auf der Erde Steintafeln mit den Namen und Daten der Gefallenen. Die hier abgeschrieben Tafeln stellen nur 1/3 aller Tafeln. Die Abschrift erfolge 2010 bei: wroclaw.hydral.com.pl
ellauri065.html on line 161: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8d/Curzon_line_en.svg/265px-Curzon_line_en.svg.png" />
ellauri065.html on line 179: ... että Claudette Colbert, joka voitti vain Parhaan naispääosan Oscar-palkinto varten Tapahtui eräänä yönä (juliste kuvassa), yksityisesti nimeltään elokuva "pahin kuvan maailmassa"? ... että vuoden 1958 Libanonin presidentinvaalit pidettiin aseellisen kapinan aikana, kun kansakuntaan oli sijoitettu 10000 Yhdysvaltain sotilasta ? ... että kiinalainen cospl ayer Liyuu on myös anime- muusikko? ... että urospuolinen merihämähäkki Propallene longiceps kuljettaa hedelmöitettyjä munia rannekkeen kaltaisissa massoissa käärittyinä jalkojensa ympärille? ... että MLS Cup 2020 -pelissä on Seattle Sounders FC neljännen kerran viiden vuoden aikana? ... että Elsa-Brita Nordlund, Ruotsin ensimmäinen lastenpsykiatri, kannatti hoidon inhimillistämistä lastensairaaloissa? ... että kirjojen ja televisiosarjojen otsikkona lainataan vuoden 1840 kappaleen " Kein schöner Land in dieser Zeit " rivi, jossa väitetään, ettei kukaan maa ole kauniimpi ja jonka tekijä esittelee Volksliedinä ? ... kun hänet nimitettiin Georgetownin yliopiston presidentiksi, Gerard J. Campbellia kuvattiin " Ivy League Catholic" "uudeksi roduksi "? Arkistoi Aloita uusi artikkeli Nimeä artikkeli Uutisissa COVID-19- pandemia Tauti Virus Sijainnin mukaan Vaikutus Rokotteet Portaali Nana Akufo-Addo vuonna 2020 Nana Akufo-Addo Nana Akufo-Addo (kuvassa) valitaan uudelleen toiseksi toimikaudeksi Ghanan presidentiksi . Moottoriurheilussa Sébastien Ogier ja Julien Ingrassia voittavat MM-rallin, kun taas Hyundai voittaa valmistajien tittelin. Hayabusa2 palauttaa asteroidista162173 Ryugukerätyt näytteet onnistuneestimaahan. Zdravko Krivokapić aloitti tehtävänsä Montenegron pääministerinä ja tuli ensimmäiseksi itsenäiseksi tehtäväksi. Käynnissä : Intian maanviljelijöiden mielenosoitus Tigray-konflikti Viimeaikaiset kuolemat : UA Khader Iman Budhi Santosa Astad Deboo Raymond Hunter Stanley Smith Manglesh Dabral Nimeä artikkeli Tänä päivänä 13. joulukuuta : Haile Selassie Haile Selassie 1862 - Yhdysvaltojen sisällissota : unionin joukkojen alle Ambrose Burnside kärsi vakavia tappioita vakiintuneiden Konfederaation puolustajiin klo fredericksburgin taistelu Virginiassa. 1928 - Amerikkalainen Pariisissa, George Gershwinin jazziin vaikuttava orkesteriteos, kantaesitettiin Carnegie Hallissa New Yorkissa. 1960 - With Haile Selassie (kuvassa), keisari Etiopiassa, pois maasta, neljä salaliittolaiset järjesti vallankaappauksen yritys asentaa kruununprinssi Asfaw Wossen uudeksi keisari. 1982 - Pohjois-Jemenissä iski 6,2 M w: n rekisteröity maanjäristys, jossa kuoli noin 2800 ihmistä. Paul Speratus ( s. 1484) Mary Todd Lincoln ( s. 1818) Dora Marsden ( s. 1960) Lisää vuosipäiviä: 12. joulukuuta 13. joulukuuta 14. joulukuuta Arkistoi Sähkopostilla Luettelo päivistä vuodessa
ellauri065.html on line 196: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6d/Still8_Human_Centipede_cropped.jpg/640px-Still8_Human_Centipede_cropped.jpg" />
ellauri065.html on line 202: The Human Centipede has its moments, but they're largely obscured by umpteen holes in the pl ot as well as by reams of exposition. It was an ultimately underwhelming affair that's neither sick or repellent enough to garner the cult status it so craves. Whether the film was a commentary on Nazi atrocities or a literal expression of filmmaking politics, the grotesque fusion at least silences the female leads, both of whose voices could strip paint.
ellauri065.html on line 204: Six says, "each film is a reaction to the other. And the film got so big, it was a pop culture phenomenon, and peopl e wanted more: a bigger centipede, helicopters and things… it had to be bigger and bigger. And what I did, I used the idea and almost made a parody on the human centipede films itself." As Full Sequence was intended to make First Sequence look like My Little Pony in comparison, Final Sequence was intended to make Full Sequence resemble a Disney film. Aargh.
ellauri065.html on line 208: A number of parodies of the film have been made. A pornographic parody, directed by Lee Roy Myers and titled The Human Sexipede, was released in September 2010.[107] It starred Tom Byron as Heiter, who joined three peopl e mouth-to-genitals.
ellauri065.html on line 319: päülys, että ohjaaja on pelännyt epl onnistuvansa virillisissik olasher-
ellauri065.html on line 351: Joskus hän kirjoittaa vielä kolmannen ja viimeisen osan. Tiedossa on vasta aihe, ei paljon muuta. Teos tulisi käsittelemään erilaisia mahdollisia maailmanloppuja ja maailmanloppukäsityksiä. ”Tällainen apokalyptinen pl äjäys”, Yli-Juonikas lupailee. Sitten onkin raamatun sivumäärä ylitettynä. Yhtä suurta myyntimenestystä ei Yli-Juonikas lupaa, vaikka onkin toiveikas.
ellauri065.html on line 428: Erittäin muotopuolinen lukeneisuus välittyy myös Yli-Juonikkaan kaunokirjallisesta tekstistä, joka toteuttaa romaanissa monenlaista "poetiikkaa". Perinteisen proosa-asettelun lisäksi kirja sisältää mm. blogitekstiä, somepostauksia, uutisartikkeleita, raportteja, halpaa pl agiointia, ET-lehden sivuja, verkon pimeämpien osioiden keskusteluja, mielipidekirjoituksia ja loppuhuipennuksena veikeän partituurin! Kirjailija hallitsee muitten tyylilajit suvereenisti. Kuten twiitissäni totesin, lukijaa haistatetaan jatkuvasti, mikä ainakin minulle teki sisäistämisen lyhyissä pätkissä lukemalla vaikeaksi.
ellauri065.html on line 482: "Captain" Virgulino Ferreira da Silva (Brazilian Portuguese: [viʁɡulĩnu feˈʁejɾɐ da ˈsiwvɐ]), better known as Lampião (older spelling: Lampeão, Portuguese pronunciation: [lɐ̃piˈɐ̃w], meaning "lantern" or "oil lamp"), was probably the twentieth century's most successful traditional bandit leader. The banditry endemic to the Brazilian Northeast was called Cangaço. Cangaço had origins in the late 19th century but was particularly prevalent in the 1920s and 1930s. Lampião led a band of up to 100 cangaceiros, who occasionally took over small towns and who fought a number of successful actions against paramilitary police when heavily outnumbered. Lampião's expl oits and reputation turned him into a folk hero, the Brazilian equivalent of Jesse James or Pancho Villa.
ellauri065.html on line 492: Its white supremacist trash. In the pl ot summary of the wikipedia article you linked for the novel, The Day of the Rope is what the fictional characters call the day that they raided all the homes of "race traitors" ("gender traitors" in Ruby script), dragged them into the streets and hung them from lamp posts. Its a defining moment for a white supremacists dream of a perfect race war where all non-whites eventually get eliminated.
ellauri065.html on line 506: MILF : (pl ural MILVES)
ellauri065.html on line 514: 1. "le ironical" term used alot on 4chan to mock peopl e using maymays (memes) often accompanied by the word "le" for extra effect. 2. a very sweet person who cares about all his close friends and family he may get in trouble a lot but he will never stop caring he is a humble strong and a person who just loves without showing it if you meet an ebin make sure you keep him close he is a good lover and great in bed with a lover take care of any ebin. 3. Someone who is afraid of legit every little frickin´ thing, also known as a wuss or pansy. 4. (Nzadi) (pl ural mbin) door Synonym: elaŋ.
ellauri065.html on line 523: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/d/d5/Pedobear.png" height="100px"/>
ellauri065.html on line 546: Jojolaihdutus. Manspl ainaus. Twerkkaus. Huohheli huoh.
ellauri065.html on line 555: - Tuuha sieki vaa peremmäl! Mie paan siul teeveen lämpiimää. Ensin hän oletti sotilaspalvelijan lähtevän hakemaan vanhaa hitaasti käynnistyvää Salora-televisiota. Kun sotilaspalvelija sitten palasi saliin kantaen tarjottimella samovaaria, kermanekkaa ja kuppeja, Lampião oivalsi palvelijan tarkoittaneen teevettä. Kielimuuri oli taas tukkinut keskusteluyhteyden. Tästähän beatlestukkainen nilkki oli juuri varoittanut. Erimielisyydet johtuvat kielitaidon puutteesta. Lukekaa kapustaa! Lahtarisika Hannu tajusi että sotilaspalvelija oli kuin nuorennettu uusintapainos Antero Rokasta, rammasta kulkurista joka 1940-luvun alussa kylvi kauhua itärajalla. Rintamalla oli tapahtunut 2 hyvin raakaa sexuaalirikosta. Miesten antamat tuntomerkit sopivat täydellisesti Rokkaan. Ylen sankea priha. Juanikas virtaheponen ei pidä Väpistä, se on huomattu jo ennenkin. No aika paskahan se olikin miehexeen. Sekin oli.
25.10.2015 Viljam Pylkäs (28. helmikuuta 1912 Valkjärvi – 6. helmikuuta 1999 Lempäälä) oli suomalainen maanviljelijä, joka oli Väinö Linnan romaanissa Tuntematon sotilas esiintyvän sotilassankari Antero Rokan esikuva. Tämä käy ilmi Väinö Linnan Pylkkäälle lähettämästä kirjeestä. (Ote Väinö Linnan kirjeestä Viljam Pylkkäälle, päivätty Tampereella 23. toukokuuta 1955)
Viljam Pylkäs sai elää pitkän elämän. Hänet siunattiin haudan lepoon helmikuussa 1999 kunnioitettuna sotaveteraanina. Siitä tilanteesta ei Valkjärveltä kotoisin oleva suppl iikkimies enää osannut luistella ulos. Juanikas virtaheponen ei pidä itäsuomalaisista. Väpi oli kyllä hämäläinen, Urjalan poikia, sankarien syntysijoilta. Jostain syystä Pylkästä ei mainita Quoran suurten suomalaisten badassien listalla. Siellä on Lauri Törni, se yx leukapuoli tarkkampuja, Mannerheim ja Lalli. Lälli kooros puuttuu myös. Er. epm.
ellauri065.html on line 560: Presidentin kynästä: Ongelmatonta yhteistyötä. Shorten Your Prick. The most recognized brands in the world love Bitly. So does the wily hippopotamus. Jake ei pidä Salesta. Se käy selväxi. Oiskohan se maalaismiehen kateutta.
Tämän työn varjopuolia on kun jostain sivulta tungetaan päähäni ajatuksia ja motiiveja, joita siellä ei ole. Olli Ainolan käsittämätön kirjoitus Iltalehdessä tänään on siitä esimerkki. Hänen mukaan vallitsee syviä ristiriitoja minun ja Erkki Tuomiojan ja oikeastaan koko eduskunnan välillä. Olen toiminut hyvässä yhteistyössä Erkki Tuomiojan kanssa hänen ulkoministeriaikanaan ja olemme myös sen jälkeen pitäneet tiivistä keskusteluyhteyttä, jota arvostan. Erimielisinä emme koskaan ole eronneet eikä sellaista ole nytkään ilmassa. Olen korostanut eduskunnan merkitystä viimeisen sanan sanojana myös ulko- ja turvallisuuspolitiikan kysymyksissä. Tiiviillä yhteydenpidolla valiokuntiin olen halunnut luoda eräänlaista pl anetaarista talvisuojakatetta myös omille toimilleni ja ymmärtääkseni myös valiokunnissa on arvostettu tätä, moni on sen julki sanonutkin. Noissakaan tapaamisissa ei ole tullut esiin mitään erimielisyyksiä. Yhteydenpitoa tulen myös jatkamaan. Ainolalle tarjottiin tilaisuutta keskustella kanssani asian tarkentamiseksi. Ikävä kyllä hän ei tarjoukseen tarttunut.
Pahoittelemme aiheuttamaamme häiriötä. Olemme hyvällä asialla. Rakennamme maailman parasta miljöötä.
ellauri065.html on line 574: Tummeli-klubi spämmää taas Hesarin keskustelusivuja. Many Alt-Right websites have done a heroic job in delivering evidence to demonstrate that the November 3 election results were based on fraud. Nonetheless, conservatives should also work to hypothesize what the Democrats pl otted, how they executed their pl ots, and why their scheme failed to cover its tracks. In a recent roundtable with other conservatives following the story, including a Maricopa County election attorney (Rachel Alexander), we put together the most pl ausible scenarios.
ploads/2020/12/BINGO.jpg" />
ellauri065.html on line 575: Below is the most pl ausible story we could come up with, to expl ain how Democrats accompl ished the fraud, based on the available evidence. I have come to suspect that multipl e conspiracies pl ayed out, possibly unaware of each other. But given the evidence we have obtained, the following story seems most pl ausible.
ellauri065.html on line 576: A relatively small team of perhaps 50 peopl e or fewer was led by a smaller cadre which probably included several lawyers and most definitely included tech experts. The smaller cadre formed some time around the impeachment and carefully recruited point peopl e over the course of the following months. Working like terror cells, they would need to keep point peopl e unaware of who else was in on the conspiracy, to protect pl ausible deniability as much as possible. They had to have at least one conspirator in the elections offices of key swing states. It wouldn’t need to be a high-profile elected official, and would no doubt be better if it were some nameless person that few peopl e noticed or would suspect.
ellauri065.html on line 577: The fact that I am writing about this shows that this was not the perfect crime. The conspiracy was exposed though the conspirators have yet to be caught. My hunch is that it was a small group of colluders who tried to dupe many innocent peopl e. A small size would expl ain why there are so many eyewitnesses who reported the signs of conspiracy, but we have yet to hear from a whistleblower who admits to being part of the pl ot. Being the middle or rear part of a human centipede makes whistling kinda hard.
ellauri065.html on line 580: Biden faces a creepy and slippery customer, especially if he gets inaugurated next month. While Trump may be facing thousands, perhaps millions of pl aintiffs in incalculable civil and criminal cases. As these cases work their way slowly through the courts, freed from the rush of meeting stop-Biden deadlines, extensive evidence will be presented and courts will hear long and compelling testimony. All the while, Biden will have to carry on while millions across America think that somebody stole the White House for him. Millions of bucks are not going to save Trump from jail this time. Es schaun aufs Hakenkreuz voll Hoffnung schon Millionen. The knavishness dauert nur noch kurze Zeit.
ellauri065.html on line 631: Here is an actual website for a company that gang stalks. The CEO “John Winters” is a private investigator and former law enforcement. There are multipl e “revenge” packages available on the website designed to help ruin the subject’s life. He claims it’s all “legal” because they never physically touch the subject.
ellauri065.html on line 635: Bio: I am a victim of Cointelpro/ Organized Gang Stalking in Southern California. This includes Community-based harassment, Group Stalking, Workpl ace mobbing, Psychological abuse/torture/menticide, sexual harassment, noise harassment, Remote Neural Monitoring, Directed Energy/ EMF weapons, Illegal surveillance in public and private, Illegal entry inside my home and car, Medical and Psychiatric fraud, Vandalism and theft of my personal property, Law Enforcement and local city govt. corruption.
ellauri066.html on line 24:
Näkemiin Anus play:none">Elämää ja teoxia
ellauri066.html on line 171: pload/image/5080_Hellakoski.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri066.html on line 203: Aaron Jääpeilin modernismia oli eze teki runosta myös graafisen kokemuspl äjäyxen ihanko Yli-Juotikas sata vuotta myöhemmin. Plus ça change etc.
ellauri066.html on line 224: playManifest/entryId/1_rase4nsh/protocol/https/format/url/flavorIds/0_kfb6h1h4/a.mp3?uiConfId=46801143&pl aySessionId=cea1b9be-b2cd-e6b1-9bf0-156490c54ce7:9629eb74-85be-b53c-9ac7-a94bdce681bc&referrer=aHR0cHM6Ly95bGUuZmkvYWloZS9hcnRpa2tlbGkvMjAwOC8xMi8xMS9hYXJvLWhlbGxhYWtvc2tpLWhhdWVuLWxhdWx1&clientTag=html5:v1.2.0" >Hauki paasaa
ellauri066.html on line 229: Miten niin rhyhtmos tarkoittaa mitattua liikettä? Pikemminkin virtausta. Rauma, Strömsö, Römperi, reostaatti ja Sörsselström on sen sukulaissanoja. Mitä eroa rytmillä, tahdilla ja mitalla? No yxi on kreikkaa ja toinen latinaa. Noli me tangere. Aika ja ampl itudi, ei kai siinä muuta. Ei siinä Klagesin metafyysinen määrittely paljon auta. Mitta on suomea, varmaan samaa alkuperää kuin kreikan metron. Metrilaku on sukulaissana, ja odometri, metronomi. Metropoli ei.
ellauri066.html on line 231: Erontekijöiden idis näyttää olevan et tahti lyödään ulkoa kuin kaleerirummusta ja rytmi on mitä orjat tekevät kuin eivät pysy tahdissa. Kun Aaro panee Lempiä Lempi on rytmikäs ja Aaro tahdikas. Tahti liikkuu horisontaalisesti (kubilabala) ja rytmi ylös alas. Tahti olis niinku aikaa ja rytmi ampl itudi.
ellauri066.html on line 247: According to producer Bruce Miller, Margaret Atwood had to ask the scriptwriters to expl ain the meaning of the term "carpet munchers."
ellauri066.html on line 249: carpet muncher (pl ural carpet munchers)
ellauri066.html on line 252: Margaret Atwood first heard "Nolite te bastardes carborundorum" in her childhood Latin classes. Atwood remarked on how "weird" it is that this thing is permanently tattooed on peopl e's bodies. Peopl e are a bunch of idiots.
ellauri066.html on line 286: pleasekillme.com/thomas-pynchon/">(Lähde)
ellauri066.html on line 320: Tietysti, näissä sanaleikeissä on tavallisesti jotain syvällistä eikä vaan älytöntä kohkausta. Tyrone Slothrop esim. Painovoiman sateenkaaressa sisältää sanan sloth, joka on avain sen luonteeseen, ja lisäxi vielä anagrammin hienosta sanasta entropia, joka on avain Slothropin epätavalliseen kohtaloon. Kun Tompan kirjoissa on yleensä satoja tälläsiä pellejä, niistä on koottu kokonaisia sanakirjoja, kuten Pynchon Character Names: A Dictionary by Patrick Hurley, ja lukemattomia lukijan oppaita, wikejä, väitöskirjoja ja fanisivustoja joissa jokainen vizi seikkaperäisesti selitetään, pl us mikä niissä oli olevinaan hupaisaa.
ellauri066.html on line 366: To shorten a long story of searching for sources: the essay ‘The Control System of the V-2’ by Otto Müller includes an ‘equation for control in yaw’ (Müller, 1957: 90), and in exactly the same notation as Gravity’s Rainbow’s equation ‘describ[ing] motion under the aspect of yaw control’ (GR 284). We can conclude that this is the searched-for templ ate for Pynchon’s Second Equation (see appendix, Figure 8). Müller’s paper is part of History of German Guided Missiles Development by Theodor Benecke and August W. Quick, published in 1957, which is based on the First Guided Missiles Seminar in Munich that took pl ace a year earlier. The seminar was organised by the American Advisory Group for Aeronautical Research and Development (AGARD) to collect information about the V-2 from German scientists and engineers to use in American research on guided missiles. Pynchon might have had access to this book and further material on rocketry in the Boeing Company for which he worked as a technical writer in the early 1960s.
ellauri066.html on line 438: Trains that have no pl ace to stay. Kodittomat ohittaa.
ellauri066.html on line 468: epicaricacy From Ancient Greek ἐπιχαιρεκακία (epikhairekakía, “joy upon evil”). (rare) Rejoicing at or deriving pl easure from the misfortunes of others.
ellauri066.html on line 480: Victoria Pedrick, Steven M. Oberhelman (2005) Literary Criticism: “... where Aristotle expl oits the threefold classification of virtues and emotions according to excess, mean, and deficiency, he uses the term epikhairekakia ...”
ellauri066.html on line 484: Nemesis (Greek: νέμεσις) is a philosophical term first created by Aristotle in his Nicomachean Ethics. The term means one who feels pain caused by others' undeserved success. It is part of a trio of terms, with epikhairekakia (ἐπιχαιρεκακία ) meaning one who takes pl easure in others' pain, similar to Schadenfreude, and phthonos (φθόνος) meaning one who feels pain caused by any pl easure, deserved or not, similar to envy.[1][2]
ellauri066.html on line 490: Schadenfreude (/ˈʃɑːdənfrɔɪdə/; German: [ˈʃaːdn̩ˌfʁɔʏ̯də] (listen); lit. 'harm-joy') is the experience of pl easure, joy, or self-satisfaction that comes from learning of or witnessing the troubles, failures, or humiliation of another.
ellauri066.html on line 494: Schadenfreude is a compl ex emotion where, rather than feeling sympathy, one takes pl easure from watching someone's misfortune. This emotion is displ ayed more in children than adults. However, adults also experience schadenfreude, although generally they conceal it. [original research?]
ellauri066.html on line 504: Rivalry-based schadenfreude is individualistic and related to interpersonal competition. It arises from a desire to stand out from and out-perform one's peers. This is schadenfreude based on another person's misfortune eliciting pl easure because the observer now feels better about their personal identity and self-worth, instead of their group identity.
ellauri066.html on line 506: Justice-based schadenfreude comes from seeing that behavior seen as immoral or "bad" is punished. It is the pl easure associated with seeing a "bad" person being harmed or receiving retribution. Schadenfreude is experienced here because it makes peopl e feel that fairness has been restored for a previously un-punished wrong.
ellauri066.html on line 513: Displ easure at another's happiness is involved in envy, and perhaps in jealousy. The coinage "freudenschade" similarly means sorrow at another's success.
ellauri066.html on line 514: Displ easure at another's unhappiness is sympathy, pity, or compassion. [citation needed]. Paizi pity on selkeesti ylhäältä alaspäin, se on vähän niinkuin armoa. Señor ten piedad de nosotros.
ellauri066.html on line 516: The Book of Proverbs mentions an emotion similar to schadenfreude: "Rejoice not when thine enemy falleth, and let not thine heart be glad when he stumbleth: Lest the LORD see it, and it displ ease him, and he turn away his wrath from him." (Proverbs 24:17–18, King James Version). Jutkut on eteviä schadenfreudessa, kun ne on niin usein olleet häviäjiä. Esim The Bob Dylan 1965 song "Like a Rolling Stone" is an expression of schadenfreude in popular culture.[original research?]
ellauri066.html on line 518: In the Nicomachean Ethics, Aristotle used epikhairekakia (ἐπιχαιρεκακία in Greek) as part of a triad of terms, in which epikhairekakia stands as the opposite of phthonos (φθόνος), and nemesis (νέμεσις) occupies the mean. Nemesis is "a painful response to another's undeserved good fortune", while phthonos is a painful response to any good fortune of another, deserved or not. The epikhairekakos (ἐπιχαιρέκακος) person takes pl easure in another's ill fortune.[33][34]
ellauri066.html on line 524: Rabbi Harold S. Kushner in his book When Bad Things Happen to Good Peopl e describes schadenfreude as a universal, even wholesome reaction that cannot be helped. "There is a German psychological term, Schadenfreude, which refers to the embarrassing reaction of relief we feel when something bad happens to someone else instead of to us." He gives exampl es and writes, "[Peopl e] don't wish their friends ill, but they can’t help feeling an embarrassing spasm of gratitude that [the bad thing] happened to someone else and not to them." onkohan tää rabbi trumpin vävyn setä?
ellauri066.html on line 526: Susan Sontag's book Regarding the Pain of Others, published in 2003, is a study of the issue of how the pain and misfortune of some peopl e affects others, namely whether war photography and war paintings may be helpful as anti-war tools, or whether they only serve some sense of schadenfreude in some viewers.[citation needed] Susanista mä en tiedä muuta kun että se oli Barthelmin postmodernistien henxelin selkäänpaukutuskekkereissä mukana SodexHossa kasarilla.
ellauri066.html on line 530: Researchers expected that the brain's empathy center of subjects would show more stimulation when those seen as "good" got an electric shock, than would occur if the shock was given to someone the subject had reason to consider "bad". This was indeed the case, but for male subjects, the brain's pl easure centers also lit up when someone got a shock that the male thought was "well-deserved".
ellauri066.html on line 548:
ellauri066.html on line 549: 2 Indigenous peopl es of the Americas (pre-1948)
ellauri066.html on line 555: 2.2.3 Massacre of the Narragansett peopl e, 1675
ellauri066.html on line 567: 3 Indigenous peopl es of Africa and Asia (pre-1948)
ellauri066.html on line 587: 5 Contemporary exampl es
ellauri066.html on line 634: Tegnell har arbetat i Laos och han har även arbetat i Kongo-Kinshasa i samband med utbrottet av ebola. Tegnells uppgift var att utreda möjligheten för olika hjälpinsatser från bland annat Sverige, detta sedan sjukhuspersonal på pl ats vägrat infinna sig vid ett av sjukhusen där ebolapatienter vårdades, detta i rädsla för att smittas. Tegnell har även studerat och forskat i USA, bland annat studerade han kring ett nytt slags transporttält för den amerikanska armén.
ellauri066.html on line 640: Vi borde låta Tegnell och hans team arbeta i fred och endast tycka kring sådant där vi själva har insyn, där det såklart då kan koppl as till åtgärderna som sätts in på olika sätt. Vi ska givetvis ta del av vad olika experter kring ämnet säger och dela det vidare om vi vill, men där bör vårt tyckande stanna. Först något eller några år efter krisens slut kan riktiga experter analysera och möjligtvis komma fram till en slutsats kring vilket tillvägagångssä tt som varit mest gynnsamt utifrån väldigt många olika parametrar. Det vi vet utifrån utbildning och Tegnells arbetserfarenhe ter är att han är expert inom det han rådgör regeringen kring.
ellauri066.html on line 686: On Tuesday, while Britain and other European countries were seeing upl ifts in cases, he announced that Sweden had its lowest number of new cases since March.
ellauri066.html on line 715: Then, on one rush-hour Metro pl atform I see just one passenger in a mask.
ellauri066.html on line 735: “There’s no other reasonable expl anation,” he adds. Sweden’s government has largely allowed non-elected bureaucrat Tegnell to lead its pandemic response.
ellauri066.html on line 753: The academic, 50, says: “Most Swedes don’t gather in big groups very often, they don’t go to church much, a lot of peopl e live alone or in small households.”
ellauri066.html on line 762: There may be more Covid spikes. Just don’t expect a lockdown U-turn from iceman Tegnell. He is pl anning a bike tour through Sweden in search of surviving nurses. It worked in Kongo-Kinshasa, why would it not work in Sweden.
ellauri066.html on line 899: “The Swedish government decided early, in January, that the measures we should take against the pandemic should be evidence-based. And when you start looking around at the measures that are being taken now by other countries, you find that very few of them have a shred of evidence.” Tegnell said that he had been in close contact with his counterparts in the United Kingdom, who were pl anning similarly light restrictions. But cases in the U.K. were increasing rapidly.
ellauri066.html on line 910: She wrote to me to say that Tegnell and his colleagues “have acted too late and too little which has led to over 12000 peopl e premature death including my husband. He would have lived without Corona!”
ellauri066.html on line 920: Sweden’s per-capita case counts and death rates have been many times higher than any of its Nordic neighbors, all of which imposed lockdowns, travel bans, and limited gatherings early on. Over all in Sweden, thirteen thousand peopl e have died from COVID-19. In Norway, which has a population that is half the size of Sweden’s, and where stricter lockdowns were enforced, about seven hundred peopl e have died. Finland, 866.
ellauri066.html on line 922: It’s likely that some simpl e policy changes—especially shutting down visitations to nursing homes sooner, and providing more P.P.E. and testing to nursing-home staff—would have saved lives. But who knows...
ellauri066.html on line 925: It’s not as bad as Italy, Spain, the U.K., and Belgium for exampl e.” says Tegnell holding up his statistic when defending his strategy, claiming that sparsely-populated Norway and Finland are the outliers, and that Sweden should be compared to the rest of Europe. Sweden has a larger foreign-born population than other Nordic countries, and its population is more concentrated in urban areas, Tegnell claims. Yes, blame the hairy arms.
ellauri066.html on line 936: Almost exactly a year from the pandemic’s start, Tegnell said that he believes peopl e should still hold off on judging his policies. “The pandemic is not over,” he said. “Any kind of final review on what’s been good and what’s been bad still awaits us.” Thats what the guys in Nuremberg said: hold your horses, this was supposed to be a 1000-year Reich. Don't blame us on what were only meant as initial experiments.
ellauri066.html on line 941: pl e-2020-07-07.png?w=720&q=20&h=575&auto=enhanced&fit=crop&crop=focalpoint&fp-x=0.5&fp-y=0.5&fp-z=1&fp-debug=false" />
ellauri066.html on line 945: Not only have thousands more peopl e died than in neighboring countries that imposed lockdowns, but Sweden’s economy has fared little better. “They literally gained nothing,” said Søren F. Kierkegaard, a senior fellow at the Paterson Institute for International Economics in Washington DC. “It’s a self-inflicted wound, and they have no economic gains.”
ellauri067.html on line 24: Ihana uutuus play:none">Antiikkia & designiä
ellauri067.html on line 38: Sain koronan sulkemasta kirjastosta herätelainana jäljittelemättömän Tommi Kinnusen lukuromaanin Pintti . Plintti oli käsineidon tapainen apupoika Marjatta Kurenniemen teoxessa Puuhiset. Se paljastui (Hui! juonipaljastus!) loppupeleissä puuhisten kuninkaan pojaxi, joka ei osannut sanoa ärrää eikä ässää. Plintti < kr. pl inthos 'tiiliskivi' voisi tarkoittaa myös jalustaa.
ellauri067.html on line 55: ploads/2018/08/P9211488-1500x630.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri067.html on line 79: Turmiolan Tommi. Tommi Nieminen. 15 June 1973. Also known as; English: Tommi Kinnunen. Finnish teacher and writer. pl ace of birth: Kuusamo. Educated at: University of Turku. Award received: Thanks for the book award. Twitter followers: 15,701. Hän on äidinkielen ja kirjallisuuden opettaja Luostarivuoren lukiossa ja koulussa.
ellauri067.html on line 91: silloin kun joku pl ärän talousliberaaleista setämiehistä astuu klaveeriin niin kovasti
ellauri067.html on line 150: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c3/Walt_Disney_and_Dr._Wernher_von_Braun_-_GPN-2000-000060.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri067.html on line 158: von Braun's use of forced labor at Mittelwerk intensified again in 1984 when Arthur Rudolph, one of his top affiliates from the A-4/V2 through the Apollo projects, left the United States and was forced to renounce his citizenship in pl ace of the alternative of being tried for war crimes.
ellauri067.html on line 159: "I aim for the Stars" said von Braun pl ayed by Udo Jürgens, with the subtitle "But Sometimes I Hit London'. Dr Strangelove is based on von Braun.
ellauri067.html on line 163: Von Braun justified the expenses for manned operations with the following argument: "I think somehow space flights for the first time give mankind a chance to become immortal. Once this earth will no longer be able to support life we can emigrate to other pl aces which are better suited for our life."
ellauri067.html on line 199: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/22/Thomas_Pynchon%2C_high_school_senior_portrait%2C_1953_%28with_caption%29.jpg/220px-Thomas_Pynchon%2C_high_school_senior_portrait%2C_1953_%28with_caption%29.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri067.html on line 200: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/dc/Thomas_Pynchon%2C_Navy_Sailor.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri067.html on line 253: ploads/2014/07/Harold-Bloom-1962_250x250.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri067.html on line 255: ploads/2020/02/21e47358-04cc-4d7f-9b62-e4035ba05117_large.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri067.html on line 288: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/10/Prvomajska_ulica_sa_pogledom_na_Altun-alem_d%C5%BEamiju.JPG/531px-Prvomajska_ulica_sa_pogledom_na_Altun-alem_d%C5%BEamiju.JPG" />
ellauri067.html on line 311: Kilroy was here. Tätä pärstää piirtelivät jenkkisotilaat viime maailmansodassa, jonkinlainen graffiti. Apu-lehti otti naaman käyttöön nimellä Missä Jallu luuraa. Niitä piti eziä lehdestä 3kpl voittaaxensa jonkun palkinnon.
ellauri067.html on line 313: ploads/2011/04/Kilroy-was-here2.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri067.html on line 318: “A market needed no longer be run by the Invisible Hand, but now could create itself—its own logic, momentum, style, from inside. Putting the control inside was ratifying what de facto had happened— that you had dispensed with God. But you had taken on a greater, and more harmful, illusion. The illusion of control. That A could do B. But that was false. Compl etely. No one can do. Things only happen, A and B are unreal, are names for parts that ought to be inseparable. …”
ellauri067.html on line 325: Pynchonin poikasena radiosta seuraaman Fred Allen Shown naispääosahenkilö oli Frankin puoliso, Jasun Martha Nussbaumin kaima. Other dramatis personae included average-American John Doe (pl ayed by John Brown), Mrs. Nussbaum (Minerva Pious), pompous poet Falstaff Openshaw (Alan Reed), Titus Moody (Parker Fennelly), and boisterous southern senator Beauregard Claghorn (announcer Kenny Delmar). Texaco ended its sponsorship of the program in 1944.
ellauri067.html on line 336: Some prominent guest stars on Allen´s program over the years included Frank Sinatra, Orson Welles, Roy Rogers, Bela Lugosi, Ed Gardner, Norman Corwin and Edgar Bergen & Charlie McCarthy. Allen would often ad-lib material and since most radio programs in those days were broadcast live, with the exception of the occasional delay here and there, the audience would sometimes hear a bleep in pl ace of a word or phrase.
Siitäkin on tullut mediaklishee.
ellauri067.html on line 363: Foil: In fiction or non-fiction, a foil is a character who contrasts with another character; most of the time it is the protagonist, to highlight qualities of the other character. In some cases, a subpl ot can be used as a foil to the main pl ot. This is especially true in the case of metafiction and the story within a story motif. The word foil comes from the old practice of backing gems with foil to make them shine more brightly. Paranoids like Pynchon make foil hats to foil conspiracies.
ellauri067.html on line 379: Höh, aika tylsä makarooni. Eikö löytynyt mitään hauskempaa? Juonikin vaikuttaa ikävystyttävältä: The poem tells of a prank pl ayed on an apothecary by a band of university students called macaronea secta. It is written in a mix of Latin and Italian, in hexameter verse (as would befit a classical Latin poem). It reads as a satire of the bogus humanism and pedantism of doctors, scholars and bureaucrats of the time.
Merkuriuxelle pyhitetty valo on keskiviikko. Zobia on toskanalainen murresana torstaille (Giovedi).
ellauri067.html on line 384: What Does the Triskelion Symbol Mean? Derived from the Greek word "Triskeles" meaning "three legs", the Triskele or Tripl e Spiral is a compl ex ancient Celtic symbol. Often referred to by many as a Triskelion, its earliest creation dates back to the Neolithic era, as it can be seen at the entrance of Newgrange, Ireland. The Triskele gained popularity in its use within the Celtic culture from 500BC onwards. This archaic symbol is one of the most convoluted to decipher as symbolists believe it is reflective of many areas of culture from the time. Huoh. Vitun symbolistit. Seinän töhrijät. Nuijia. Kirkkovene ja Jallu luuraa on selkeämpiä.
ellauri067.html on line 410: Coat of Arms of the Russian Government 1919 (Church Slavonic "Си́мъ побѣди́ши", Russian "Этим побеждай"), see White movement. Inscribed on the Colours of the Irish Brigade.Inscribed on the banner and the motto of the 4th Guards Brigade (now 2nd Motorized Battalion "Pauci" — the Spiders) of the Croatian army. Inscribed on the banner of the Sanfedismo in 1799. Inscribed in Greek on the flag (obverse side) of the Sacred Band of the Greek War of Independence. Inscribed in Greek on the coat of arms, insignia and flag of the 22nd Tank Brigade (XXII ΤΘΤ) of the Greek Army. Inscribed on the flag of the 25th South Carolina "Edisto Rifles" Regiment, Civil War, USA, 1861-65. The motto of 814 Naval Air Squadron of the Royal Navy Fleet Air Arm. The motto of the Mauritius National Coast Guard. The motto of U.S. Marine Aircraft Squadron VMA(AW). The motto of Finnish Defence Force Reconnaissance. The motto of the Norwegian army 2nd Battalion (Norway). The motto of USS Waldron. The motto of HMCS Crusader, and the Sea Cadet Corps with her as the namesake, 25 RCSCC Crusader in Winnipeg.The motto of the Royal Australian Army Chapl ains´ Department.
ellauri067.html on line 411: Sacred Military Constantinian Order of Saint GeorgeIn the logo of Knights Templ ar, Grand Encampment, U.S.A.Public motto of the Sigma Chi international frat
ellauri067.html on line 418: Used as the title of the political manifesto of George Lincoln Rockwell and the American Nazi Party. Is the motto on the coat of arms of the city of Plzeň, Czech Republic. The phrase is in the coat of arms of the city of Birkirkara, the largest city on the island of Malta, and the city of Bayamon, Puerto Rico. Is the motto on the Coat of Arms of O´Donnell. Appears in one of the paintings of the Polish artist Zdzisław Beksiński. It has been used in some versions of logo for the brand of cigarettes, Pall Mall. Appears on one of the stickers on the guitar of Alvin Lee, Ten Years After´s frontman, the same guitar he pl ayed at The ´69 Woodstock Festival.
ellauri067.html on line 428: Freud´s didactic strategy in his Three Essays on the Theory of Sexuality was to construct a bridge between the "perversions" and "normal" sexuality. Clinically expl oring "a richly diversified collection of erotic endowments and inclinations: hermaphroditism, pedophilia, sodomy, fetishism, exhibitionism, sadism, masochism, coprophilia, necrophilia" among them, Freud concluded that "all humans are innately perverse". He found the roots of such perversions in infantile sexuality—in the child´s "polymorphously perverse" inclinations ... the "aptitude" for such perversity is innate.
ellauri067.html on line 448: Imipolex , in addition to being a pun (imitation pole: Last year an imitation pole that claimed to have a load rating of 300kgs snapped mid-performance. The pole dancer was severely injured and may never walk again because she fractured her pelvis & spine), "obviously" stems from a combination of "imido" with a near-reversal of "expl ode".
ellauri067.html on line 450: Structure of a representative imido compl ex (py = pyridine, CMe3 = tert-butyl).
ellauri067.html on line 452: Wilhelm Tellin alkusoitto . Rossini. Pynchon näyttää olleen Rossini-fäni. Siinä on kylä tollasta töötötystä vauhtiin päästyä. Tän kirjan työnimi oli Mindless pl easures . Ois ollut osuvampi nimi. Ks. tannhäuserismi alla.
ellauri067.html on line 454: Schwarzkommando: (p. 359) supposed herero fighters in the service of the nazis. It is propaganda like King Kong or the black science man Neil Degrasse Tyson to make black peopl e seem intelligent. The Schwarzkommando in Gravity´s Rainbow is fictional. Schrödinger´s douchebag is a guy who says offensive things and decides whether he is joking based on the reaction of peopl e around him.
ellauri067.html on line 461: He continued, “So Santa´s reindeer, which all sport antlers, are therefore all female, which means Rudolf has been misgendered.” Tyson’s message triggered swift criticism, which included accusations that Tyson was “ruining things that are supposed to be fun.” “Why ruin this magic for children with your reddit-tier haha i’m so smart bulls***, this isn’t funny, you aren’t clever, and nobody cares, let them have this magic in their lives, you sound like an adolescent,” another person said. “They’re magic reindeer a**hole. The normal rules don’t appl y. Quit trying to s*** on Christmas,” one person repl ied.
ellauri067.html on line 463: tannäuserism : In a note to 3.2 of Gravity´s Rainbow, Heseburger expl ains Pynchon´s use of the word "Tannhäuserism" as follows: The tragic error of Tannhäuser — for exampl e, in Richard Wagner´s operatic version of the myth — was to postpone his quest in order to linger for one year of sensual, "mindless pl easure" with the goddess Venus under her mountain called Venusberg. Vai onko se Brocken, Jaakon ja Jöötin mainizema Kyöpelinvuori Harzissa? On 11 April, American forces liberated the camps at Buchenwald, near Weimar, and the V2 rocket slave-labour camp at Nordhausen in the Harz Mountains. Ryssät eivät päässeet lähellekään. Jenkeillä oli vitun kiire kahmimaan izelleen ne raketit. Ja siitä vasta iso piru pääsi merrasta.
ellauri067.html on line 493: Book reviewers have a long history of attacking Pynchon for his flat characters. Roger and Jessica are susceptible to this criticism. Neither is given much of a history. We don’t know where they grew up or who their parents were. This is one of the great failings of... what to call it? "middlebrow" is antiquated... anyway, a very common kind of criticism (common in the Anglo-American world, anyway), and it affects how authors write (which is one reason I read mainly Russian literature these days). I don't need to know "where they grew up or who their parents were" and I don't much care, unless, of course, you write about it brilliantly because that´s truly what you want to focus on, as opposed to "welp, better provide a pl ausible background for my characters so the reader will believe they're behaving this way." Just write good sentences in a good and surprising order. Two peopl e have fallen out of love? I don't care if it's because one of them has mommy issues or the other was bullied as a child—peopl e fall out of love all the time, for any reason or none, just tell me what they do about it, and in language that makes me want to keep reading! Teoxet on tärkeät, vähät elämästä. En jaxa luontokuvauxia, hyppään ne heti yli.
ellauri067.html on line 500: ...The first piece to provide substantial information about Pynchon´s personal life was a biographical account written by a former Cornell University friend, Jules Siegel, and published in Playboy magazine. In his article, Siegel reveals that Pynchon had a compl ex about his teeth and underwent extensive and painful reconstructive surgery, was nicknamed "Tom" at Cornell and attended Mass diligently, acted as best man at Siegel's wedding, and that he later also had an affair with Siegel's wife. Siegel recalls Pynchon saying he did attend some of Vladimir Nabokov's lectures at Cornell but that he could hardly make out what Nabokov was saying because of his thick Russian accent. Siegel also records Pynchon's commenting: "Every weirdo in the world is on my wavelength", an observation borne out by the crankiness and zealotry that has attached itself to his name and work in subsequent years.
ellauri067.html on line 534: VIDEO
ellauri067.html on line 535: VIDEO
ellauri067.html on line 542: Guardianin Pynchon-bändäriltä (joku dekkaristi): Pynchon didn´t garner mere admirers or allow anything like fence-sitting: you either hated him or you were a zealot.
Or you got just pl ain bored. Pynchon on yhtä syvää kasaria kuin C-kasetti. Tai no, ize se on aikasempaa vuosikertaa, joku 50-60-luvun beatnikki, muzen suomifanit on takatukkia. Tai oli.
ellauri067.html on line 550: VIDEO
ellauri067.html on line 577: Prokosch was born in Madison, Wisconsin, into an intellectual family that travelled widely. His father, Eduard Prokosch, an Austrian immigrant, was Professor of Germanic Languages at Yale University at the time of his death in 1938. Prokosch was graduated from Haverford College in 1925 and received a Ph.D. in English in 1932 from Yale University. In his youth, he was an accompl ished squash racquets pl ayer; he represented the Yale Club in the 1937 New York State squash racquets championship. He won the squash-racquets championship of France in 1938.
ellauri067.html on line 581: From early on, Prokosch sought to surround himself with a veil of mystification and cast his life into a hopeless riddle. Approaching his sixtieth year, he boasted that no person had succeeded in knowing him as an integral personality: "I have spent my life alone, utterly alone, and no biography of me could ever more than scratch the surface. All the facts in Who’s Who, or whatever, are so utterly meaningless. My real life (if I ever dared to write it!) has transpired in darkness, secrecy, fleeting contacts and incommunicable delights, any number of strange picaresque escapades and even crimes, and I don't think that any of my 'friends' have even the faintest notion of what I'm really like or have any idea of what my life has really consisted of. . . .With all the surface 'respectability,' dipl omatic and scholarly and illustrious social contacts, my real life has been subversive, anarchic, vicious, lonely, and capricious."
ellauri067.html on line 589: Kukaan ei ole sanonut että päiville pitäisi niiden päättyessä koettaa kepl otella jonkinlainen järjellinen selitys. Siispä ezitäänpä jotain oikein järjetöntä. Sanoja sanoja rakastava puritaani.
ellauri067.html on line 604: School Days School Days is an American popular song written in 1907 by Will D. Cobb and Gus Edwards. Its subject is of a mature coupl e looking back sentimentally on their childhood together in primary school.
ellauri067.html on line 622: Joku tyyppi kirjoitti pl okin Guardianille yhestä sen mielihenkilöstä yhessä sen mielikirjassa (linkki ): Pahixia kirjoissa: Kapteeni Blicero.
ellauri069.html on line 24: Fountain play:none">Lähdekritiikkiä
ellauri069.html on line 40: Postmodernism is the Swiss Army knife of critical concepts. It’s definitionally overloaded, and it can do almost any job you need done. This is partly because, like many terms that begin with “post,” it is fundamentally ambidextrous. Postmodernism can mean, “We’re all modernists now. Modernism has won.” Or it can mean, “No one can be a modernist anymore. Modernism is over.” Peopl e who use “postmodernism” in the first, “mission accompl ished,” sense believe that modernism—the art and literature associated with figures like Picasso and Joyce—changed the game compl etely, and that everyone is still working through the consequences. Modernism is the song that never ends. Being postmodernist just means that we can never be pre-modernist again. Peopl e who use it in the second sense, as the epitaph for modernism, think that, somewhere along the line, there was a break with the assumptions, practices, and ambitions of modernist art and literature, and that everyone since then is (or ought to be) on to something very different. Being postmodernist means that we can never be modernist again.
ellauri069.html on line 44: What killed the distinction wasn’t defining pop art up. It was defining high art down. It was the recognition that serious art, too, is produced and consumed in a marketpl ace.
ellauri069.html on line 45: You can make anti-art—Duchamp’s “Fountain,” (posliininen kusilaari jossa lukee tää on taidetta) for exampl e—only when everyone still has some conception of authentic, stand-alone, for-its-own-sake art. Warhol’s work is not anti-art. Finding no quality on which to hang a distinction between authentic art and everything else, it simpl y drops the whole question.
ellauri069.html on line 67: Their memoir is an attempt to understand their gambling obsession as a way of coping with guilt over his death. “The addiction to gambling, with the unsuccessful struggles to break the habit and the opportunities it affords for self-punishment, is a repetition of the compulsion to masturbate,” Freud says in “Dostoevsky and Parricide”; “the relation between efforts to suppress it and fear of the father are too well known to need more than a mention.” No one believes Freud anymore, of course. A great deal of his writing is, at one level of expl icitness or another, about the authority of fathers and the struggle for autonomy. (And Barthelme was a close reader of Freud.)
ellauri069.html on line 76: A coupl e of years after Barthelme took the apartment, the writer Kirkpatrick Sale and his wife, Faith, an editor, moved in downstairs and became close friends. They had been students at Cornell with Pynchon, and Pynchon would write part of “Gravity’s Rainbow” (1973) in their apartment.
ellauri069.html on line 89: Barthelme believed himself to be working in the tradition of Joyce and Samuel Beckett, and that his appropriation of popular, commercial, and other sub-artistic elements (instruction manuals, travel guides, advertisements, sentences from newspaper articles, and so on) in his writing was done as a means of making literature, not subverting it or announcing its obsolescence. Daugherty thinks that many peopl e have got Barthelme wrong.
ellauri069.html on line 91: Barthelme incorporates bits from other peopl e’s texts into his stories, and a good deal of his writing sounds like (and some of it pl ainly is) pastiche, as though it had been composed in the style, or spoken in the voice, of someone else.
ellauri069.html on line 93: It can certainly look, in short, as though Barthelme, like Warhol, were simpl y dropping the question of whether something counts as literature or not, since markers of the literary are impossible to find in his writing. The high-art traditionalist has no pl ace to hang his beret. Daugherty’s purpose is to convince us that this was not Barthelme’s intention.
ellauri069.html on line 95: Barthelme felt that American fiction had abandoned what modernists called “the revolution of the word.” “Fiction after Joyce seems to have devoted itself to propaganda, to novels of social relationships, to short stories constructed mousetrap-like to suppl y, at the finish, a tiny insight typically having to do with innocence violated, or to works written as vehicles for saying no! in thunder,” he wrote in 1964, in the second issue (there would be only two) of Location.
ellauri069.html on line 111: He also believed that one of the things deadening our responses was mass culture. “I believe that’s the pl ace artists are trying to get to, and I further believe that when they are successful, they reach it... an area somewhere probably between mathematics and religion, in which what may fairly be called truth exists.” He was an enemy of television. He was a serious jazz buff. It took him a while to become interested in rock. Daugherty is right. He was a postmodernist in the first sense.
ellauri069.html on line 116: He compl ained that book publishers “publish an enormous number of things which look like books, sort of feel like books, but in reality are buckets of peanut butter with a layer of whipped cream on top.”
ellauri069.html on line 127: Sidney Joseph "S.J." Perelman (February 1, 1904 – October 17, 1979) was an American humorist and screenwriter. He is best known for his humorous short pieces written over many years for The New Yorker. He also wrote for several other magazines, including Jude, as well as books, scripts, and screenpl ays. Perelman received an Academy Award for screenwriting in 1956.
ellauri069.html on line 154: compl ine 134/; seventh and last of the canonical hours. Muut tunnit ovat nimeltään ...
ellauri069.html on line 170: Dr. Mabuse is a fictional character created by Norbert Jacques in the German novel Dr. Mabuse, der Spieler ("Dr. Mabuse, the Gambler"), and made famous by three films about the character directed by Fritz Lang: Dr. Mabuse the Gambler (silent, 1922) The Testament of Dr. Mabuse (1933) and the much later The Thousand Eyes of Dr. Mabuse (1960). Dr. Mabuse is a master of disguise and telepathic hypnosis known to empl oy body transference, most often through demonic possession, but sometimes utilizing object technologies such as television or phonograph machines, to build a "society of crime". One "Dr. Mabuse" may be defeated and sent to an asylum, jail or the grave, only for a new "Dr. Mabuse" to later appear, as depicted in The Testament of Dr. Mabuse. The repl acement invariably has the same methods, the same powers of hypnosis and the same criminal genius. There are even suggestions in some installments of the series that the "real" Mabuse is some sort of spirit that possesses a series of hosts.
ellauri069.html on line 182: Berliner Schnauze f (genitive Berliner Schnauze, no pl ural)
ellauri069.html on line 199: Omegapiste on ranskalaisen filosofin ja jesuiittapapin Pierre Teilhard de Chardinin (1881–1955) kehittämä käsite, joka kuvaa kompl eksisuuden ja tietoisuuden äärimmäistä tasoa, jota kohti maailmankaikkeus hänen teoriansa mukaan kehittyy. Teilhard kutsui evoluutioteoriaansa kompl eksisuuden ja tietoisuuden laiksi; Teilhardin mukaan maailmankaikkeus voi kehittyä lisääntyvän kompl eksisuuden ja tietoisuuden suuntaan vain, mikäli sitä vedetään kohti äärimmäisen kompl eksisuuden ja tietoisuuden pistettä. Höh, tää on vaan vanhaa taivastoivoa tekotieteellisillä sanoilla. Vähän sellasta transhumanismia. Pierrestä lisää albumissa 219 .
ellauri069.html on line 203: Gerard Swope (December 1, 1872 – November 20, 1957) was a U.S. electronics businessman. He served as the president of General Electric Company between 1922 and 1940, and again from 1942 until 1945. During this time Swope expanded GE's product offerings, reorienting GE toward consumer home appl iances, and offering consumer credit services. Swope was born in St. Louis, Missouri, to Ida and Isaac Swope, Jewish immigrants from Germany. He graduated from the Massachusetts Institute of Technology in 1895.
ellauri069.html on line 224: Fisk, Jubilee Jim (1834-1872) 285; Known popularly as the "Barnum of Wall Street" and "Jubilee Jim," Fisk was one of the most outrageous figures of the Gilded Age. The most notorious pl ot of Fisk's short career was the attempt to corner the gold market during 1868 and 1869. Fisk's and Jay Gould's effort collapsed when President U.S. Grant intervened to halt the Black Friday scandal. Fisk brazenly refused to honor his contracts, leaving thousands ruined.
ellauri069.html on line 230: Gilbert ja Sullivan : Mulla on joku kirja niiden lyriikoista. Sullivan nikersi sävelmät ja Gilbert nakersi sanat. Sullivan's dislike of what he considered the artificial nature of Gilbert's pl ots led to their spl it.
ellauri069.html on line 232: Gnahb : poss. etymology: "Gnahb" spelled backwards--bear with me here--is "bhang" the drink made from flowering tops of the marijuana pl ant, cannabis sativa. Gnap oli Ran-Tan-Planin haukkausääni kun se puri esim Galtoneita.
ellauri069.html on line 241: ploads/2020/12/Proud-Boys-2.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri069.html on line 251: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2a/Helgoland_von_See.jpg/1920px-Helgoland_von_See.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri069.html on line 257: German novelist Hermann Hesse (1877-1962), experiencing a crisis of the spirit, had psychoanalysis with J.B. Lang, a discipl e of Carl Gustav Jung. His novel Demian (1919), which shows the influence of analysis, is about the character Demian (a classic "seeker") and his quest for self-awareness. Published during the troubled Weimar years, the novel was very popular and had a pervasive influence on the Germans. It also made Hesse famous.
ellauri069.html on line 266: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7a/Salome_with_the_Head_of_John_the_Baptist-Caravaggio_%281610%29.jpg/800px-Salome_with_the_Head_of_John_the_Baptist-Caravaggio_%281610%29.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri069.html on line 283: Maailman Sota IIn aikana Syyskuussa 1944, Sakun voimat tähtäävät V-2 roketteja Lontooseen, Englantiin. Amerikan sotilas plitude="[Book] Character Analysis tab" data-crosslinktype="Characters">Alokas Laiskiais-Entropia
ellauri069.html on line 286: Aiempi hullusuoja lähellä Lontoota liikanimellä "Valkoinen Vizaus" majoittaa ryhmää hyypiöitä sekaantuneina tsygologiseen sodankäyntiin. Hörhöryhmä tunnetaan alkukirjainlyhenteellä KALAT. Henkilökunta sisältää tilastotieteilijän, Roger Mexikon, ja behavioristizygologin, Edward "Ned" plitude="[Book] Character Analysis tab" data-crosslinktype="Characters">Poinzimiehen .
ellauri069.html on line 299: Laiskiainen, Täti Vihreä, ja Nalle Läski lähetetään Ranskan Rivieralle, missä he pysähtyvät lomakohteeseen. Niiden ekana päivänä siellä, ne piknikoivat biitsillä joidenkin naisten kaa (tietysti). Muu nainen, muukalainen, joutuu mustekalan hyökkäämäxi. Alokas koittaa mäsätä mustekalan pään pullolla. Läski tuottaa liian-kätevän ravun, käskien Laiskiaisen houkutella mustekalan pois ruualla. Alokas epäilee juonta jonkinlaista. (Se olisikin eka tässä kirjassa.) Hän on oikea. Mussetkala on Poinzimiehen Grigori! Hyökkäys on lavastettu saadaxeen Laiskiaisen yhteen hollantilaisen naisen kaa, plitude="[Book] Character Analysis tab" data-crosslinktype="Characters">Katje Borgesius , entinen Nazi yhteispeluri ja nyt KALAT toimija. Alokas, tämä
ellauri069.html on line 313: Vetelys matkustaa Nordhauseniin, Sachsa, missä V-2 roketit rakennettiin. Matkalla hän tapaa plitude="[Book] Character Analysis tab" data-crosslinktype="Characters">Katkeron , kurssihereron aiemmasta Sachsan siirtolasta Etelä Länsi Aahrikassa, ja Suurehkon Mervin, rasistisen Amerikan upseerin. Katkero ja Mervi ovat myös kiinnostuneita V-2 rockets. (Ainoo joka alkaa väsyä on lukija.)
ellauri069.html on line 315: Nordhausenissa, Laiskis viettää yön izekuvatun noidan Geli Trippingin jalkovälissä. Hänen rakastajansa, ryssä plitude="[Book] Character Analysis tab" data-crosslinktype="Characters">Aivastus ,
ellauri069.html on line 353:
plotDiagram_bundle" id="
pl ot_diagram">
Gravity's Rainbow Plot Diagram Climax 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 Rising Action Falling Action Resolution Introduction plotDiagram_leftColumn">
plotDiagram_annotation is_introduction_new">
plotDiagram_subHeading">Introduction
plotDiagram_caption">pl otDiagram_number">1
ellauri069.html on line 354: pl otDiagram_text">"They" suspect Slothrop's erections predict V-rockets.
plotDiagram_annotation is_rising_action_new">
plotDiagram_subHeading">Rising Action
plotDiagram_caption">pl otDiagram_number">2
ellauri069.html on line 355: pl otDiagram_text">Slothrop goes AWOL, looking for the truth.
plotDiagram_caption">pl otDiagram_number">3
ellauri069.html on line 356: pl otDiagram_text">Slothrop becomes Rocketman.
plotDiagram_caption">pl otDiagram_number">4
ellauri069.html on line 357: pl otDiagram_text">Slothrop stops looking for the truth about Jamf.
plotDiagram_caption">pl otDiagram_number">5
ellauri069.html on line 358: pl otDiagram_text">The Hereros bring the 00001 rocket to Lüneberg Heath.
plotDiagram_caption">pl otDiagram_number">6
ellauri069.html on line 359: pl otDiagram_text">Slothrop's personality is fully scattered.
plotDiagram_rightColumn">
plotDiagram_annotation is_climax_new">
plotDiagram_subHeading">Climax
plotDiagram_caption">pl otDiagram_number">7
ellauri069.html on line 360: pl otDiagram_text">Blicero fires the 00000 rocket with Gottfried inside.
plotDiagram_annotation is_falling_action_new">
plotDiagram_subHeading">Falling Action
plotDiagram_caption">pl otDiagram_number">8
ellauri069.html on line 361: pl otDiagram_text">The 00000 rocket begins its descent.
plotDiagram_annotation is_resolution_new">
plotDiagram_subHeading">Resolution
plotDiagram_caption">pl otDiagram_number">9
ellauri069.html on line 362: pl otDiagram_text">A rocket hangs poised above a movie theater in Los Angeles.
ellauri069.html on line 363: plitude="[Book] Next Button">Part Summaries
ellauri069.html on line 382: Viittailematta tän enempää sivistyneesti Melvilleen (tai toiseen koprofiiliin Joyceen), Nipsun Kosmos-ravintolan jumala näyttäis olevan T.S. Eliot (poliittiset näkemyxetkin saattaa mätsätä paremmin kuin tää kriitikko edes aavistaa) - tää on tämmöstä jättömaata tämäkin: turhaa kaivelua roippeissa jonkun tyhmän armon tai lunastuxen perässä. Eliskä meillä on tässä taas pahasta omastatunnosta kärsivä pieni syntinen joka kylpee iloisen syyllisesti pl ödässä ja runkussa ja ezii sitten armopsuihkua. Tää premissinä, voix tästä tullakaan mitään järkevää? (No aaltopeltikatolisia ovat molemmat, ei siis ihmekään.) Pahinta kaikesta on häpeä, sanoo joku Hömpän hahmoista s. 697 alalaidassa. Just niin persepää.
ellauri069.html on line 385: Sitäpaizi Laiskiainen kokoa ajan "melkein" selvittää valtavan bisnessalaliiton, joka joteskin liittyy öljypohjaiseen synteettiseen pl astikkiin, joka on koko sodan syy ja seuraus. No eihän tässä ole mitään salaperäistä, näinhän se suurin piirtein nimenomaan on. Kazo vaikka Bushin poikien myöhempiä öljytouhuiluja Keski-Aasiassa, jonka seurauxena muslimit on vihaisia kuin ampiaiset, taikka öljynpolton aikaansaamasta ilmastoähkystä, joka tappaa tai mikromuovittaa kaikki muut elukat paizi nää termiittiapinat ize (no nekin kyllä lopulta mutta aikasytytyxellä).
ellauri069.html on line 397: —Greta Erdmann, pornographic film actress and mother/groomer of Bianca, a child-victim who becomes the novel’s symbol of how fascism has corrupted and destroyed innocence - ah fuck, I mean the Shirley Templ e lookalike whom Pynchon/Slothrup fucks compl etely delirious.
ellauri069.html on line 401: —the mission of Oberst Enzian, who is Tchitcherine’s Herero half-brother, one of a select company of Hereros who survived Germany’s genocide of their peopl e to become rocket engineers during World War II; he was a bunk toy for Weissmann mentioned in the next bullet as a boy in black Africa;
ellauri069.html on line 412: On toinen poliittinen syy mix tää novelli on vaikee nieltävä. Nipsu termentää että "Me", eivaan "Ne", siis me "tavalliset persut", ollaan jossain mielessä myös "Ne" (no ainaskin "Niiden" mielestä, tietysti, "Nehän" on "Niille" "Me".). "Niillä" on haaraliike "Meidän" aivoissa. Eli siis, aivot on ihan samoja, toisilla on vaan enemmän paalua perstaskussa. Meidän maniat ja psykoosit, unelmat ja halut, vievät "Meitä" mukaan kuluttamaan talouskasvua, mistä "Ne" sitten vetää taskuun lisää kasvua. Yx Nipsun alter egoista ehottaa ratkaisuxi “sado-anarkismia.” En kyllä ymmärrä mitä se muka toimittaa. Yhtä lailla "Ne" osaa laskuttaa SM-esineistöstä. Novellissa on myös nyt jo aika vanhanaikainen ja toxinen teesi, Riemastuxen patinaa: et fasismi on, kuten (se aikaisemmin kummastelemani) Wilhelm Reich pani sen, “the frenzy of sexual crippl es”—eli et nazit oli pedofiilejä ja homoja (eli siis kääntäenkin myös). Nyt ei sellaista voi enää sanoa, sillä fasistit ja muut ällöt poikkeavuudet on ristiinluokituxia. Senhän osoittaa jo GR ize, jossa Nipsu on vastustavinaan nazeja mutta peukuttaa paskansyöntiä, piiskurointia, pedofilia ja muita sopimattomuuxia.
ellauri069.html on line 457: A: I never thought I would live to see a time when Gravity’s Rainbow would be denigrated and dismissed for lacking sense. This book appeared when I was a freshman at university. It was immediately chosen as part of the reading list for a course in 20th century fiction in English and regarded as important, and it was expected that simpl e-minded undergraduates should be able to make a serious attempt to engage with the book using heart, faith, skill, and such intelligence as they possessed. As a result, I own a first edition. ;)
ellauri069.html on line 459: As my favourite English teacher in university used to say, “Stop it. Use your intelligence, not your attitude.” If the querent is seriously perpl exed by the book, he might want to consult the Wikipedia article on it, which expl ains the book more or less adequately and also provides pointers to literature on the subject.
ellauri069.html on line 470: Much of the book is about the difficulty of living in the ubiquitous shadow of immanent, instant destruction. How do you live a life with anything like normalcy, if you know that at any moment a V2 rocket you won't hear coming could make that moment your last? Some fall to nihilist "mindless pl easures" (the novel's working title); some pl ay power games; some withdraw from the world; some remain willingly oblivious. Normalcy turns out not to be an option.
ellauri069.html on line 472: The book's pivot, the transition from Book III to Book IV, takes pl ace on August 6, 1945, the day Hiroshima was bombed. The V2 rocket is now the precursor to the nuclear ICBM, and the final sections of the book -- the only parts set in contemporary times -- ask the same question of the contemporary reader, including quite directly on the last page: what do you think, what do you do, in those last moments before everything ends?
ellauri069.html on line 479: Imagine a story that combines Ulysses, Catch-22, The Canterbury tales, Under the Volcano, On the Road and many others. First, there is a huge cast of characters and most times, it is unclear who’s speaking and to whom. A second challenge is getting into the context of the book. The novel demands a vast knowledge of history, geography, music, literature, science, mathematics and occult. Apart from this the book also expl icitly deals with profanity, racism, violence, pedophilia, coprophilia and seemingly infinite number of sex scenes. That being said, Pynchon doesn’t throw them arbitrarily and each one of them have a purpose. The main pl ot itself is set at the end of World War 2 and Europe is in chaos. As new countries and alliances are being formed, so too are new perspectives within the characters. Mental state being broken down, peopl e making poor choices and actions being justified and helps us see how peopl e tend to live destructively. As if there compl exities weren’t enough, Pynchon includes a “postmodern” aspect of the book that leaves the first-time reader confused. Pynchon’s voice is seen through this aspect and a sense of paranoia creeps throughout the book and everything is questioned.
ellauri069.html on line 483: An article recently came out in the LA Times about Pynchon’s Great American Novel. The article begins by stating that Mason and Dixon is actually the most obvious candidate for the Great American Novel, and it instead suggests that Gravity’s Rainbow is perhaps the Great European Novel. The article then questions whether or not the Great American Novel even exists, and if it does if it is of a singular form or if it takes on many forms at once. After considering this question, the article finally claims that the Great American Novel is actually made up of all of Pynchon’s works fused together “into one epic Pynchoverse.” The Great American Novel certainly does not need to take pl ace in America, but still many will argue that Gravity’s Rainbow by itself can never be considered as the Great American Novel because of its non-American setting and its wide array of characters. This is definitely debatable, but I do enjoy the idea of a “Pynchoverse” or a Pynchon Compilation being considered as the true Great American Novel. That being said, I do think most readers and Pynchonerds would undoubtedly say that Gravity's Rainbow is the Greatest Pynchon Novel.
ellauri069.html on line 485: To varying degrees, and woefully oversimpl ified, most of the novels pit a pl ucky heroine or poor, priapic, paranoid schnook against some vast, bureaucratic, merciless conspiracy.
ellauri069.html on line 502: Next up on the Audible pl aylist: Snow Crash.
ellauri069.html on line 588: Backstage Wife is an American soap opera radio program that details the travails of Mary Noble, a girl from a small town in Iowa who came to New York seeking her future. Each episode opened with the announcer expl aining:
ellauri069.html on line 651: Schlumpf ja Pökäler ovat pedofiilikolleegoja, toinen bylsi tytärtään Ilseä ja toinen 11-vuotiasta Biancaa, ja sen jälkeen vielä Frieda-sikaa. Vähän tollasia antisankareita, niinko kirjassa Catch-22. Love is a many-spl endored thing. Niin paljon kuuluu rakkauteen... laulaa Fredi-sika.
ellauri069.html on line 653: Love is a many-spl endored thing
ellauri069.html on line 663: Yes true love´s a many-spl endored thing
ellauri069.html on line 666: ploads/cracker-jack-retro-513x1024.jpg" width="30%" style="float:right" />
ellauri069.html on line 678: The Cracker Jack brand has been owned and marketed by Frito-Lay since 1997. Frito-Lay announced in 2016 that the prizes would no longer be provided and had been repl aced with a QR code which can be used to download a baseball-themed game. We're sorry but Cracker Jack doesn't work properly without JavaScript enabled. Please enable it to continue.
ellauri069.html on line 688: How many peopl e have sung “Buy me some peanuts and Cracker Jack” during the seventh inning stretch at baseball games? Now, they might have to start getting more specific. One of the world’s iconic brands is branching out.
ellauri069.html on line 697: Drake is a sort of modern-day Robin Hood. He donates the proceeds of his latest robbery to fund the stalled construction of the "New Social Institute". He even writes a book, "Crackerjack": The true story of my expl oits, which becomes a bestseller.
ellauri069.html on line 714: American poet, novelist, essayist, songwriter, pl aywright, editor and publisher. Known for his satirical works challenging American political culture. Perhaps his best-kĺnown work is Mumbo Jumbo (1972), a sprawling and unorthodox novel set in 1920s New York that has been ranked among the 500 most important books in the Western canon. Reed´s work has often sought to represent neglected African and African-American perspectives; his energy and advocacy have centered more broadly on neglected peopl es and perspectives, irrespective of their cultural origins.
ellauri069.html on line 729: VIDEO
ellauri069.html on line 730: VIDEO
ellauri069.html on line 762: Biographers report that Baum had been a political activist in the 1890s with a special interest in the money question of gold and silver (bimetallism). The City of Oz earns its name from the abbreviation of ounces "Oz" in which gold and silver are measured. Unssin kaupunki. For exampl e, the Tin Woodman wonders what he would do if he ran out of oil. "You wouldn't be as badly off as John D. Rockefeller", the Scarecrow responds, "He'd lose six thousand dollars a minute if that happened." Dorothy—naïve, young and simpl e—represents the American peopl e. She is Everyman, led astray and seeking the way back home. Moreover, following the road of gold leads eventually only to the Emerald City, which may symbolize the fraudulent world of greenback paper money that only pretends to have value. It is ruled by a scheming politician (the Wizard) who uses publicity devices and tricks to fool the peopl e (and even the Good Witches) into believing he is benevolent, wise, and powerful when really he is a selfish, evil humbug.
ellauri069.html on line 783: Other putative allegorical devices of the book include the Wicked Witch of the West as a figure for the actual American West; if this is true, then the Winged Monkeys could represent another western danger: Indigenous peopl es of the Americas. The King of the Winged Monkeys tells Dorothy, "Once we were a free peopl e, living happily in the great forest, flying from tree to tree, eating nuts and fruit and doing just as we pl eased without calling anybody master. ... This was many years ago, long before Oz came out of the clouds to rule over this land."
ellauri069.html on line 785: In fact, Baum proposed in two editorials he wrote in December 1890 for his newspaper, the Saturday Pioneer, the total genocidal slaughter of all remaining indigenous peopl es. "The Whites," Baum wrote, "by law of conquest, by justice of civilization, are masters of the American continent, and the best safety of the frontier settlements will be secured by the total annihilation of the few remaining Indians. Why not annihilation?"
ellauri070.html on line 24: Demokratian painajainen play:none">Jyrähtelyä
ellauri070.html on line 56: Douglas Fairbanks oli yhdysvaltalainen näyttelijä, käsikirjoittaja, ohjaaja ja tuottaja. Hän esiintyi mykkäelokuvan aikana useissa seikkailuelokuvissa, joista tunnetuimpia ovat Zorron merkki, Kolme muskettisoturia, Robin Hood ja Bagdadin varas. Fairbanksin ensimmäinen vaimo oli Beth Sully ja heillä oli poika Douglas Jr. Fairbanks jätti vaimonsa alkaessaan seurustella Mary Pickfordin kanssa. Hän oli naimisissa Pickfordin kanssa vuodet 1920–1936. Fairbanks oli Charles Chapl inin paras ystävä kuolemaansa saakka.
ellauri070.html on line 58: The Mendoza RM2 was a light machine gun similar to the M1918 BAR manufactured in Mexico by Productos Mendoza, S.A.. Rafael Mendoza have been producing machine guns for the Mexican Army since 1933 and all have been noted for their lightness, simpl icity, ease of maintenance, and economic construction without sacrificing reliability.
ellauri070.html on line 91: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0e/Avon_Fantasy_Reader_7.jpg/250px-Avon_Fantasy_Reader_7.jpg" />
ellauri070.html on line 97: maxaläikkäiseen sieraimeen, armeijan teräslankaisille silmälaseille, ylös alas pitkin tärkättyjä paidanetumuxia, Phi Beta Läppä merkkejä, Kunnialegioonan ritarimerkkejä, Leninin kunniamerkkejä, rautaristejä, Purpl e Hearteja, Valkoisia leijonia, Viktorian ristejä, eläkkeelle jäämisen kunniaksi saatuja kultavitjoja, Trump for President pinssejä. Jne.
ellauri070.html on line 183: prahlt: der vergoldete Lärm, das pl atzende Denkmal. kullattu meuhka, ääneti mätkähti pazas.
ellauri070.html on line 193: werben, trommeln und pl ärrn. Für Erwachsene aber rumpuja, räiskettä löytyy. Aikuisviihdettä
ellauri070.html on line 300: Tein tässä kirjottaessa taas kerran sen havainnon, että mulle alkaa selvitä tollaisen ääreist kompl exin ja runollisen textin merkitys vasta kun mä kirjotan siitä. Tän briiffauxen alussa mulla oli vähintään tollanen "horror vacui" fiilis, tyhjyyden pelko. Onko tässä yhtää mitään järkeä? Mut nytmä huomaan pelkkiä uusia linkkejä.
ellauri070.html on line 340: In Jewish Kabbalistic cosmology of Isaac Luria, the qlippot are metaphorical "shells" surrounding holiness. They are spiritual obstacles receiving their existence from God only in an external, rather than internal manner. Divinity in Judaism connotes revelation of God's true unity, while the shells conceal holiness, as a peel conceals the fruit within. They are therefore synonymous with idolatry, the root of impurity through ascribing false dualism in the Divine, and with the Sitra Achra (סטרא אחרא "Other Side"), the perceived realm opposite to holiness. They emerge in the descending seder hishtalshelus (Chain of Being) through Tzimtzum (contraction of the Divine Ohr), as part of the purpose of Creation. In this they also have beneficial properties, as peel protects the fruit, restraining the Divine flow from being dissipated. Kabbalah distinguishes between two realms in qlippot, the compl etely impure and the intermediate.
ellauri070.html on line 342: Their four "concentric" terms are derived from Ezekiel's vision (1:4), "And I looked and behold, a whirlwind came out of the north, a great cloud, and a fire infolding itself, and a brightness was about it..." The "Three Impure Qlippot" (compl etely Tamei "impure") are read in the first three terms, the intermediate "Shining Qlippah" (Nogah "brightness") is read in the fourth term, mediating as the first covering directly surrounding holiness, and capable of sublimation. In medieval Kabbalah, the Shekhinah is separated in Creation from the Sefirot by man´s sin, while in Lurianic Kabbalah Divinity is exiled in the qlippot from prior initial Catastrophe in Creation. This causes "Sparks of Holiness" to be exiled in the qlippot, Jewish Observance with physical objects redeeming mundane Nogah, while the Three Impure Qlippot are elevated indirectly through Negative prohibitions. Repentance out of love retrospectively turns sin into virtue, darkness into light. When all the sparks are freed from the qlippot, depriving them of their vitality, the Messianic era begins. In Hasidic philosophy, the kabbalistic scheme of qlippot is internalised in psychological experience as self-focus, opposite to holy devekut self-nullification, underlying its Panentheistic Monistic view of qlippot as the illusionary self-awareness of Creation.
ellauri070.html on line 346: Katkero Mutiainen on "lipevä etelämaalainen". Cary Grantkin oli homo. Katje näyttää yhä 16-vuotiaalta kuin Ivana Trump. Oisko se 61. Eiku 71. Sileä pl atinatukka huppuna tekoripset räpsyen kuin hölmö pissis giffikuvassa. "Eli hän tarvizee ruoskaa", kirjoittaa Weissman Haagista. "Hän tarjoo pyllyä kuin me vain impotenssin pelosta: pystyykö se vielä, vai eikö se..." Pystyä < pistyä, upota kuin peizi poihin. (Täst mie piän sanoo Nipsu, työntää kynää silminnähtävästi jäykistyen.)
ellauri070.html on line 363: VIDEO
ellauri070.html on line 374: VIDEO
ellauri070.html on line 409: van heinatukkopl an perään ja mt katsoat pallta nalinen jo van heinätukkopään perään... ja muut katsovat päältä: nainen jo
ellauri070.html on line 433: Star Trek is an American media franchise originating from the 1960s science fiction television series Star Trek, created by Gene Roddenberry. That series, now often known as "The Original Series", debuted on September 8, 1966, and aired for three seasons on NBC. It followed the voyages of the starship USS Enterprise, a space expl oration vessel built by the United Federation of Planets in the 23rd century, on a mission "to expl ore strange new worlds, to seek out new life and new civilizations, to boldly go where no man has gone before". In creating Star Trek, Roddenberry was inspired by C. S. Forester's Horatio Hornblower series of novels, Jonathan Swift's Gulliver's Travels, and television westerns such as Wagon Train. Hornblowerit oli Anna-Kaisa Oraviston mielilukemistoa. Pia Pipsukka piti Heinz Konsalikista.
ellauri070.html on line 438: Kelvinator was a United States home appl iance manufacturer and a line of domestic refrigerators that was the namesake of the company. Although as a company it is now defunct, the name still exists as a brand name owned by Electrolux AB. It takes its name from William Thomson, 1st Baron Kelvin, who developed the concept of absolute zero and for whom the Kelvin temperature scale is named. The name was thought appropriate for a company that manufactured ice-boxes and refrigerators.
ellauri070.html on line 440: Tästä jääkaappipätkästä tulee vähän mieleen Philip Roth ja maxapihviin runkkaus. Voisko se olla tässä mukana? Portnoy´s Compl aint on vuodelta 1969. Tuskinpa. Nipsun veli Hogan liimasi pisinappulaan Chiquita-tarran. Petti venytteli sitä ja sanoi Pee-pii-taa! Sellaisia veljet on. Hauska vinjetti: Nipsunkin isi pitää nukkuessaan hiusverkkoa! Käyttiköhän se Hornborgin hiusvettä jossa oli hauska tykkitornin muotoinen kääntyvä nokka, tai paidanhihan lyhentimiä? Entä sukkahenxeleitä?
ellauri070.html on line 443: VIDEO
ellauri070.html on line 456: William Bendix (January 14, 1906 – December 14, 1964) was an American film, radio, and television actor, who typically pl ayed rough, blue-collar characters. Se oli rebublikaani, olis varmaan kannattanut Trumppia. Malcolm X tuskin kiillotti Shinolalla Jack FGK:n kenkiä, Nipsusta puhumattakaan. Kalpeanaamat pahexuu Malcolmia koska se kääntyi muslimix. Jotain hemmetin perverssiä Nipsussa on, kun se koko ajan heiluu neekerisodomian ja teinityttöpedofilian välillä.
ellauri070.html on line 458: Carl Denham is a fictional character in the films King Kong and The Son of Kong (both released in 1933). Denham's function in the story is to initiate the action by bringing the characters to Skull Island, where they encounter the giant beast Kong. Denham then brings Kong to New York City to put him on displ ay as entertainment, but he escapes and rampages through the city.
ellauri070.html on line 461: VIDEO
ellauri071.html on line 24: Western RANGERS play:none">Länsiviihdettä
ellauri071.html on line 40: Kenosha Kid : Thomas Pynchon's novel Gravity's Rainbow possesses an image which has intrigued readers of the novel since its introduction. Many readers come away from the novel failing to find the answer to one question: What is the Kenosha Kid? Critics have argued about the identity of the Kenosha Kid. Some have argued that it does not really exist. Instead, it is only the result of Tyrone Slothrop´s hallucinations brought on by sodium amytal (or "truth serum"). Ironically, the idea that the Kenosha Kid comes out during a dose of "truth serum" proves to be even more confusing for readers (given it may or may not really exist). Other critics have denoted the Kenosha Kid as a dance (likening it to the "Charleston" or the "Big Appl e" dances).
ellauri071.html on line 48: The Kenosha Kid by Forbes Parkhill (Aug 1931) "A Robinhood of straights and flushes pl ays his most thrilling game for a desperation jackpot."
ellauri071.html on line 75: S. 915. Tää kohta mainitaan lähes jokaisessa Pynchon wikissä ja pl okissa. Mixi, en kyllä yhtään ymmärrä. Se ei ole kovin hauska eikä omaperäinen. Se ei liity mihinkään. Mixi siis? Ihmisiä näköjään naurattaa kun niitä muistutetaan titaaneista ja isistä. Jotain kastraatiopelkoa kai Nipsu tässä morsettaa. Isi uhkaa ruuvata siltä kikkelin irti taas.
ellauri071.html on line 80: "Little sigma, times P of s equals one over the square root of two pi, times e to the minus s squared over two little-sigma squared" would be the probability density function for a Normally Distributed random variable with mean zero and standard deviation little sigma (though here the traditional form has been multipl ied through by little sigma, probably to make it easier for Roger to say). But this is "P of s-over-little-sigma" - a reference to things not being quite Normal?
ellauri071.html on line 95: Sir Noël Peirce Coward (16 December 1899 – 26 March 1973) was an English pl aywright, composer, director, actor and singer, known for his wit, flamboyance, and what Time magazine called "a sense of personal style, a combination of cheek and chic, pose and poise".
ellauri071.html on line 99: Encouraged by his ambitious mother, who sent him to a dance academy in London, Coward's first professional engagement was in January 1911 as Prince Mussel in the children's pl ay The Goldfish.
ellauri071.html on line 105: In 1924, Coward achieved his first great critical and financial success as a pl aywright with The Vortex. The story is about a nymphomaniac socialite and her cocaine-addicted son (pl ayed by Coward). Some saw the drugs as a mask for homosexuality; Kenneth Tynan later described it as "a jeremiad against narcotics with dialogue that sounds today not so much stilted as high-heeled".
ellauri071.html on line 107: During the run of The Vortex, Coward met Jack Wilson, an American stockbroker (later a director and producer), who became his business manager and lover. Wilson used his position to steal from Coward, but the pl aywright was in love and accepted both the larceny and Wilson's heavy drinking.
ellauri071.html on line 109: His biggest failure in this period was the pl ay Sirocco (1927), which concerns free love among the wealthy. It starred Ivor Novello, of whom Coward said, "the two most beautiful things in the world are Ivor's profile and my mind". Theatregoers hated the pl ay, showing violent disapproval at the curtain calls and spitting at Coward as he left the theatre. Taisi olla downright homostelua.
ellauri071.html on line 113: Coward's last pre-war pl ays were This Happy Breed, a drama about a working-class family, and Present Laughter, a comic self-caricature with an egomaniac actor as the central character.
ellauri071.html on line 116: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fe/Noel_Coward_Entertains_the_Men_of_the_Eastern_Fleet%2C_HMS_Victorious%2C_Trincomalee%2C_Ceylon%2C_1_August_1944_A25390.jpg/220px-Noel_Coward_Entertains_the_Men_of_the_Eastern_Fleet%2C_HMS_Victorious%2C_Trincomalee%2C_Ceylon%2C_1_August_1944_A25390.jpg" height="360px" />
ellauri071.html on line 117: VIDEO
ellauri071.html on line 121: Another of Coward's wartime projects, as writer, star, composer and co-director (alongside David Lean), was the naval film drama In Which We Serve. The film was popular on both sides of the Atlantic, and he was awarded an honorary certificate of merit at the 1943 Academy Awards ceremony. Coward pl ayed a naval captain, basing the character on his friend Lord Louis Mountbatten.
ellauri071.html on line 128: In the aftermath of the war, Coward wrote an alternative reality pl ay, Peace In Our Time, depicting an England occupied by Nazi Germany. Blessed peace without Noel, presumably.
ellauri071.html on line 132: VIDEO
ellauri071.html on line 154: Joopa joo, tollasta runebergilaista sota ja bylsintä-teemaa, joka on nuorta miestä aina kuumentanut. Luin sivun, luin 2, vereni tunsin kuumemmax. Ei toi mulla enää nappaa, jos on koskaan niin kauhiasti napannutkaan. Bylsintäpuoli kyllä, muttei toi urheuspuoli niinkään. Vaik eihän toi vänrikki Nappula nyt tässä kovin näyttävästi sotinut, yöpaita päällä kazoisnelisti suoraan vihollisten joukkoon epähuomiossa. Romanttisempi veljyeni Jönsy on suomentanut sen etevästi, mutta en nyt kehtoo kokonaan sitä tähän pl agioida, muutakuin pari mehukasta kohtaa. Toi ranskalainen on sit varmaan transu nainen, tai sitten ei, kukas näistä homopettereistä selvän ottaa...
ellauri071.html on line 208: VIDEO
ellauri071.html on line 230: Apl ectrum hyemale is a species of orchid native to the eastern United States and Canada, from Oklahoma east to the Carolinas and north to Minnesota, Ontario, Quebec and Massachusetts. It is particularly common in the Appalachian Mountains, the Great Lakes Region, and the Ohio and Upper Mississippi Valleys. Isolated populations are also reported from Arizona.
ellauri071.html on line 231: Apl ectrum hyemale is the sole species of the genus Apl ectrum. The generic name comes from Greek and signifies "spurless". The species is commonly referred to as Adam and Eve or putty root; the latter refers to the mucilaginous fluid which can be removed from the tubers when they are crushed.
ellauri071.html on line 235: Hexes-Stadt, p.o. Hexenstadt, vgl. Entenhausen. Hirmu monet Pynchon pl okit vaan kopioivat Pynchon Wikiä.
ellauri071.html on line 245: Kvaternionit ovat pleksiluku" title="Kompl eksiluku">kompl eksilukujen nelikomponenttinen laajennus, jossa yhden imaginääriakselin pl ay: none;">pl aystyle i}">
ellauri071.html on line 248: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 252: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle i}
ellauri071.html on line 254: sijaan on käytössä kolme ei-reaalista akselia pl ay: none;">pl aystyle i}">
ellauri071.html on line 257: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 261: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle i}
ellauri071.html on line 263: pl ay: none;">pl aystyle j}">
ellauri071.html on line 266: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 270: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle j}
ellauri071.html on line 272: ja pl ay: none;">pl aystyle k}">
ellauri071.html on line 275: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 279: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle k}
ellauri071.html on line 281: . Kvaternionit voidaan myös ymmärtää reaaliluvun ja kolmiulotteisen vektorin yhdistelmäksi. Kvaternio on muotoa pl ay: none;">pl aystyle t+xi+yj+zk}">
ellauri071.html on line 284: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 297: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle t+xi+yj+zk}
ellauri071.html on line 299: playstyle t+xi+yj+zk}">, jossa pl ay: none;">pl aystyle t}">
ellauri071.html on line 302: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 306: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle t}
ellauri071.html on line 308: , pl ay: none;">pl aystyle x}">
ellauri071.html on line 311: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 315: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle x}
ellauri071.html on line 317: , pl ay: none;">pl aystyle y}">
ellauri071.html on line 320: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 324: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle y}
ellauri071.html on line 326: ja pl ay: none;">pl aystyle z}">
ellauri071.html on line 329: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 333: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle z}
ellauri071.html on line 335: ovat reaalilukuja ja pl ay: none;">pl aystyle i}">
ellauri071.html on line 338: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 342: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle i}
ellauri071.html on line 344: , pl ay: none;">pl aystyle j}">
ellauri071.html on line 347: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 351: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle j}
ellauri071.html on line 353: ja pl ay: none;">pl aystyle k}">
ellauri071.html on line 356: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 360: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle k}
ellauri071.html on line 364: pl ay: none;">pl aystyle i^{2}=j^{2}=k^{2}=ijk=-1\,}">
ellauri071.html on line 367: playstyle="true">
ellauri071.html on line 398: plication/x-tex">{\displ aystyle i^{2}=j^{2}=k^{2}=ijk=-1\,}
ellauri071.html on line 400: playstyle i^{2}=j^{2}=k^{2}=ijk=-1\,}">
ellauri071.html on line 496: Ja sama enkuxi: Galium odoratum , the sweetscented bedstraw, is a flowering perennial pl ant in the family Rubiaceae, native to much of Europe from Spain and Ireland to Russia, as well as Western Siberia, Turkey, Iran, the Caucasus, China and Japan. It is also sparingly naturalized in scattered locations in the United States and Canada. It is widely cultivated for its flowers and its sweet-smelling foliage. It is also used, mainly in Germany, to flavour May wine (called "Maibowle" or "Maitrank" in German), sweet juice punch, syrup for beer (Berliner Weisse), brandy, jelly, jam, a soft drink (Tarhun, which is Georgian), ice cream, and herbal tea. Also very popular are Waldmeister flavoured jellies, with and without alcohol. In Germany it is also used to flavour sherbet powder, which features prominently in Günter Grass´ novel The Tin Drum.
ellauri071.html on line 510: Soh soh kääntäjä! "voiko olla selventänyt" s. 959 on anglismi, suomexi "onko voinut selventää" tai "liekö selventänyt". Ei pidä kompastua näin loppumetreillä, vaikka varmaankin jo väsyttää. Nipsu pääsee irti skatologisista skizoista yhtä paljon kuin täpl äsika täpl istään: Bodinen sormuspilli viheltää ovelasti sen peräaukossa, kylähullut vetävät käteen unisonossa ja vatkaavat penixiään kuin taistelusauvoja, ruiskauttavat suihkuina veriviiruista spermaa kiiltäville housunpunteille, ym.ym. huumeunia. Ei pitäisi käyttää noin paljon mömmöjä.
ellauri071.html on line 527: Kabbala on joskus varhaiskeskiajalla kehitetty jutkumystiikka. Filosofisista koulukunnista eniten kabbalaan on vaikuttanut uuspl atonismi. Näiden kahden opin kirjoituksia vertailtaessa ei voi olla huomaamatta niitä samankaltaisuuksia, jotka vallitsevat kummankin opin käsityksissä alkuykseydestä (Εν / כתר), siitä emanoituvasta ideoiden maailmasta (Νους / חכמה), joka toimii kaiken olevan pohjapiirustuksena ja kabbalassa varsinkin 'kirjoittamattomana Toorana', jolta Jumala kysyi neuvoa maailmaa luodessaan, sekä ideoiden maailmasta emanoituvasta sielujen tyyssijasta (Ψυχή / בינה). Juutalaisista neopl atonisteista varhaisiin kabbalisteihin ovat vaikuttaneet ainakin Šalomo Ibn Gabirol (n. 1021–1058) sekä Barcelonassa syntynyt ja Narbonnessa kuollut Abraham bar Ḥijja (1070-1136/45), jonka ajatuksia on lainattu jopa sanatarkasti Bahirissa — vanhimmassa kabbalistisessa teoksessa (Gershom Scholem: Origins of the Kabbalah). Kabbalasta voimakkaasti vaikutteita saaneista suuntauksista mainittakoon šabbateismi sekä itä-eurooppalainen hasidismi.
ellauri071.html on line 535: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/46/Kabbalistic_Tree_of_Life_%28Sephiroth%29_2.svg/800px-Kabbalistic_Tree_of_Life_%28Sephiroth%29_2.svg.png" width="20%" style="float:right" />
ellauri071.html on line 589: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/2c/4Q201.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri071.html on line 617: All through our crippl ´d Zone, Kautta meidän vammasen Vyöhykkeen,
ellauri072.html on line 34: Vastenmielisten miesten lyhyitä haastatteluja play:none">Valivalia
ellauri072.html on line 54: Goodreadista löytyi seurraava luettelo izemurharouvista ja herroista. Huom. Benjamin, Hitler, Cato, Petronius ja Seneca teki vastentahtoisesti suikin pakotettuna. Ei lasketa. Koestler oli unkarilainen ex-commie takinkääntäjä siionistilänkkäri joka teki n:nnen vaimon kaa Klasu-Ebba tupl aseppukun. Lie ollut paska kirjailijakin. Suuri osa näistä on tuiki tuntemattomia. Varmaan jouti mennäkin. Bourdain oli tv-kokki joka hirtti izensä. Paloi joku keitos pohjaan kai. Kosinski oli ehkä huijari. Herrndorf on Wikipediassa tituleerattu vaan "tekijäxi" ja oli kuolemassa aivosyöpään muutenkin. Eli taulukkona näin:
ellauri072.html on line 126: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/54/Chatterton.jpg/1024px-Chatterton.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri072.html on line 168: Frost boarded a steamship from New York to Norfolk, and walked into the Great Dismal Swamp where, Hart maintained, he pl anned to commit suicide in the woods by a canal. Some biographers have scoffed at the idea that Frost wanted to “throw… [his] life away” in the swamp.
ellauri072.html on line 170: “But that’s what he said when he was candid in interviews,” Hart said, “that he wanted to put an end to his life in the Great Dismal Swamp. He went in with his street clothes, a little satchel, no food or gear. He was rescued by a coupl e of guys in a boat who were going down the canal [to pick up some duck hunters].”
ellauri072.html on line 197: VIDEO
ellauri072.html on line 206: What has gone mainly unnoticed in the various discussions of the problem is something that has puzzled me for some time. Why does Dante treat the homosexual Florentines in Inf. 16 with greater respect than any other infernal figures except those in Limbo? I do not have an answer to that question, but would like to bring it forward. Let me begin with Purg. 26. We have probably not been surprised enough at Dante's insistence that roughly half of those who sinned in lust, repented, and were saved (and are now on their way to that salvation) were homosexual. It would have been easy for him to have left the homosexuals out of Purgatory, and it is hard to imagine an early (or a later) commentator who would have objected to the omission, especially since, in Hell, homosexuality is treated, not as a sin of the flesh, but as one of violence against nature. However, for a unique instance of a commentator who is aware of Dante's unusual gesture see Trifon Gabriele on Inf. 15.46: "Non e' dubbio che 'l Poeta vuol appl audere a questo vitio quanto egli puo'. Puopa hyvinkin. Ecco, gli fa parlare di belle cose e gli fa tutti grand'uomini nelle lettere e nell'arme e nella religione, e finalmente non e' peccato ne l'Inferno o Purgatorio che egli men danni con le parole sue che questo; anzi lo polisce quanto puo' con suoi versi".
ellauri072.html on line 211: This is the only pl ace in Hell that a group of sinners speaks courteously to Dante in a single voice ("rispuoser tutti" is the indication; again, the only similar moment occurs in Limbo -- 4.98 -- when the four poets give Dante their [unspoken?] greeting as one).
ellauri072.html on line 259: Tää on lättänenä Platonilta aika vetelää argumentointia. Harmonia-analogia ei impl ikoi että sielu on justiinsa sama kuin harmonia, riittää että se on korkeasti järjestyneen materian eräänlainen järjestys, joka häipyy kuin pieru saharaan kun se materia hajoaa. Tämmöstä onnetonta ex analogia päättelyä löytyy Platonilta roppakaupalla. Eise kyllä ollut mikään neropatti. Muze olikin oikeistofasisti.
ellauri072.html on line 303: Joku köyhä äiti jolla on lapsia ikävän porhon kaa ei saa pitää niitä koska tää äijä haluu pitää ne ja uhkaa lopettaa lasten isot rahat jos se ei saa lapsia. Ei huoltajuutta, ei elinkorkoa, se sanoo kuin Lucky Luke. Äiti antaa perixi. Onxe hyvä äiti vai paha? Väärä kysymys. Onxe äijä paha? Raikuva ON. Onx Amerikka paha jossa tää on mahdollinen skenaario? Suoraa huutoa. Loppumattomia apl odeja seisaallaan. Tää oli helppo taas.
ellauri072.html on line 345: Wallin alaviitehärdelin läpi paistaa että sitä vaivaa suunnattomasti mitä sen lukijat ehkä ajattelee siitä. Se on paha merkki sekin. Se on luultavasti epäonnistunut narsisti. Ehkä sen vanhemmat ylisti sitä ylettömästi. Ylistämällä alisti. Kehui kupl ixi sen keskinkertaista tennispeliä.
ellauri072.html on line 441: Republikaanit erottaa patriisien senaatin ja pl ebeijien alahuoneen. Niille tasavalta on säätykohtaista. Senaatissa on rikkaita konservatiivisia vanhuxia jotka vaihtuu harvemmin. Demokraatit hallizevat alahuoneessa eli eduskunnassa. Jarruna on perustuslaki jota ei voi muuttaa ilman vaaleja.
ellauri072.html on line 477: What will happen when the age-old economy of scarcity gives way to the Age of Leisure? Professor Gabor, who won the 1971 Nobel Prize for physics offers a futuristic projection based on a static population and GNP, "classless, democratic, and uniformly rich." Fearful that total secruity "will create unbearable boredom and bring out the worst in Irrational Man," Gabor is anxious to retain "effort," "hardship," and the Protestant Ethic -- lest society dissolve in an orgy of anti-social, hedonistic nihilism (viz. the current drug expl osion and the spoiled-brat students). To avoid such evils Gabor proposes that work and its attendant moral upl ift be divorced from production and the service sector of the economy be vastly enlarged. But this is only the beginning -- enthusiastic about Social Engineering Gabor suggests using it to weed out potential misfits, trouble-makers and "power addicts"; suppl ementing I.Q. tests with E.Q. (Ethical Quotient) measurements; and modeling elementary and secondary education on the 19th century British public school which knew so well how to inculcate good citizenship, intellectual excellence and pride in achievement. The Third World, still wrestling with pre-industrial material want, is ignored -- since we can't afford any more industrial pollution presumably they will just have to adjust to their misery. Gabor's assessment of "the Nature of Man" shows a woefully naive Anglo-American ethnocentricity and compl ete ignorance of anthropology and his vision of post-industrial utopia operating on the moral axioms of the 19th century is as elitist as it is improbable.
ellauri072.html on line 499: David Foster Wallace wrote three novels, three story collections, two collections of essays, and other things too, but his reputation still rests mainly on “Infinite Jest” — the 1,100-page novel published in 1996 and set alternately in a tennis academy and a rehab center — and on his sui generis now-nearly-a-genre long-form journalism about topics ranging from lobsters to dictionaries to John McCain to the Adult Video News awards for pornographic films. Wallace’s best work, perhaps by far, is “The Pale King,” an unfinished novel about I.R.S. empl oyees that was assembled posthumously by Wallace’s editor, Michael Pietsch.
ellauri072.html on line 508: Infinite Jest is not the only thing that made Wallu famous, though. There was also his bandanna, which was as misinterpreted as so much else about him. As the Max biography expl ains, Wallace started wearing the bandanna as the least embarrassing solution he could think of to obscure the intense sweating attacks that overcame him without warning. (In high school, he had taken to carrying around a tennis racket and a towel as a tacit cover story for the sweating.) The acutely self-conscious, anxious, addicted and at times showy characters in Wallace’s fiction were not, Max helps us recognize, wildly difficult for Wallace to imagine — the characters were iterations of himself.
ellauri072.html on line 516: Any diagnoses seem as unilluminating as saying that the “reason” someone is short is because he is 5-foot‑1. About Wallace’s problems it seems worth noting simpl y that his A.A. attendance coincided with a long period of relative wellness, and that getting off the antidepressant Nardil, which he had taken most of his adult life, coincided with a serious crash in mood that ended in his suicide six months later.
ellauri072.html on line 536: Wallace’s fiction is, in its attentiveness and labor and genuine love and pl ay, very nice. But what is achieved on the page, if it is achieved, may not hold stable in real life. As another dangerously romanticizeable suicide, Heinrich von Kleist, once said: “It is not we who know but rather a certain state of mind in us that knows.” And one is not always in the same state of mind.
ellauri072.html on line 540: Another thing, perhaps more powerful, that detains peopl e at the niceness question has to do, I think, with competitiveness. Readers are correct to sense, in Wallace’s elaborate grammars and data fields, not only a generous show but also a tacit petition for our recognition of his intellect. This really annoys some peopl e.
ellauri072.html on line 542: Arvaa Riitta mitä peopl eja? Tommosia tosi kilpailuhenkisiä hikipinkoja kuin sä!
ellauri072.html on line 548: But yes, Wallace was extremely competitive, even to the point of competing about not being competitive. One of the wincing pl easures of Max’s biography is reading excerpts from Wallace’s correspondence, especially with his close friend and combatant Jonathan Franzen, but also with just about every white male writer he might ever have viewed as a rival or mentor. Aggressive self-abasement, grandstanding, veiled abuse, genuine thoughtfulness, thin-skinned pandering — it’s all there. As the correspondents compete about who is making genuine human connections and who and what is really nice and good, they seem to be in some realm far from most kinds of human connection save for that of heated testosteronic battle.
ellauri072.html on line 550: Onnistuu se estrogeeneilläkin Riku. Sun omakehut netissä on aika haisevia. Mä lyön vetoa et puhut sellasella tekomatalalla äänellä kupl a kurkussa.
ellauri072.html on line 562: One of the main criticisms of Wallace’s work is that he simpl y mirrored decay and malaise instead of moving through and beyond them. This was, not infrequently, one of his own main concerns. But the more nattering and pervasive compl aint, which takes on more dimension in Max’s biography, is that he is just too brainy and aggressively difficult — just too, well, mean.
ellauri072.html on line 564: No toi on taas just tota amerikkalaista bullshittiä. Kuten satuin erinomaisesti muotoilemaan tässä äskettäin: separaattorilla pitää jenkeissä aina sinkoa elämän hapan sintu ja ipl akka kerma erixeen ja aina lättästä joku optimistinen kermapaakku annoxeen päällimmäisexi.
ellauri072.html on line 570: Peopl e who find Wallace’s books lacking in heart often object to his thinkiness. But often a thought is an emotion and an emotion is a thought; thinking, like humor, may be an intellectual defense against emotion, but it is a wonderfully advanced defense.
ellauri072.html on line 575: — oh yeah, that’s the other thing, peopl e dismiss (or admire) Wallace’s work as “cool”.
ellauri072.html on line 590: In the 1996 novel Infinite Jest by David Foster Wallace, each year has a corporate sponsor; most of the action takes pl ace in year 8, the "Year of the Depend Adult Undergarment".
ellauri072.html on line 592: Depend is a brand of absorbent, disposable underwear and undergarments for peopl e with urinary or fecal incontinence. It is a Kimberly-Clark brand, and positions its products as an alternative to typical adult diapers. Depend is the dominant brand of disposable incontinence garments in the United States with a 49.4 share of the market.
ellauri072.html on line 645: Anna was the first to come home that day. Wallace hid behind the front door with a baseball bat. When she arrived, he hit her at least 10 times so hard the baseball bat broke. But she was still moaning and not yet dead. He drug her into the bathroom and pl unged the broken bat into her neck and out her back.
ellauri072.html on line 657: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/91/John_Dewey_in_1902.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri072.html on line 658: pload/image/lucky-luke---quick----premium-pl astic-figures---averell-dalton-p-image-263122-grande.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri073.html on line 27: Emmä tiedä, hähähä! play:none">Vulgääriä
ellauri073.html on line 47: Jabedur Rahman Inbox a aso pl z
ellauri073.html on line 175: Why are many of the most successful peopl e pl agued by feelings of emptiness and alienation? This wise and profound book has provided millions of readers with an answer--and has helped them to appl y it to their own lives.
ellauri073.html on line 179: In my work with these peopl e, I found that every one of them has a childhood history that seems significant to me:
ellauri073.html on line 183: This role secured "love" for the child—that is, his parents' expl oitation. He could sense that he was needed, and this need, guaranteed him a measure of existential security.
ellauri073.html on line 195: On outoa mutta sopivaa että Johnin yx hahmo, John McCain (kekä se on pl iis?) kuoli just äsken vähän ennen Wallun 10v kuolinpäivää.
ellauri073.html on line 202: Cain gets introduced by some kind of very high-ranking Highway Patrol officer whose big hanging gut and face the color of rare steak seemed right out of southern-law-enforcement central casting and who spoke approvingly and at some length about Senator McCain’s military background and his 100 percent conservative voting record on crime, punishment, firearms, and the war on drugs. Wendy—who has electric-blue contact lenses and rigid blond hair and immaculate makeup and accessories and French nails and can perhaps best be described as a very Republican-looking young lady indeed—is back here at the beige table eating a large styrofoam cup of soup and using her cell phone to try to find somepl ace in downtown Charleston where Mrs. McCain can get her nails done.
ellauri073.html on line 204: Mrs. McC.’s sedulous attention to her own person’s dress and grooming is already a minor legend among the press corps, and some of the techs speculate that things like getting her nails and hair done, together with being almost Siametically attached to Ms. Lisa Graham Keegan (who is AZ’s education superintendent and supposedly traveling with the senator as his “Advisor on Issues Affecting Education” but is quite pl ainly really along because she’s Cindy McCain’s friend and confidante and the one person in whose presence Mrs. McC. doesn’t look like a jacklighted deer), are the only things keeping this extremely fragile person together on the Trail. (Onx tää nyt se jota sanottiin julkisesti emättimexi? Ei hizi, kyllä sille tarvittaisiin joku miellyttävämpi sana.)
ellauri073.html on line 210: John McCain oli US politiikan David Foster Wallace (jatkaa Matt): pelkkää pintaliitoa. Molempien ura oli vaihtoehtoista totuutta. Wallace oli muka “avant-garde” artisti mutta matki Hubert Selbyä, Franz Kafkaa ja 12 muuta hemmoa; McCain oli "sotasankari" joka särki 8 konetta ja särkyi kidutuxessa. (En mä ois kyllä, miettii Matt). Molemmat oli huonoja koulussa: Wallu jätti kesken tohtoriopinnot ja Johnu sai melkein potkut sota-akatemiasta. Ne oli ilkeitä naisille: Wallu stalkkasi useita naisia ja kerran työnsi tyttöystävänsä liikkuvasta autosta. McCain otti avioeron vammaisesta vaimosta ja nimitti tosta vaimoa julkisesti "vituxi". Wallace oli olevinaan omaperäinen vaikka se kirjoitti kuin ala-asteella, ja McCain oli olevinaan kapinoizija vaikka se oli rebublikaanina ihan keskitasoa. Tähän vähän lisää Wallun pl itiikkanäkemyxiä:
ellauri073.html on line 252: Repl y by Gabe Korer • 2 years ago
ellauri073.html on line 254: Hahaha look at you you fat fuck. You choose to spend your time bashing a man who has been dead for a decade, and there's no real reason for it other than the obvious jealousy that consumes you as an ugly person, inside and out. You break your criticism down into two distinctions: Foster's writing and his character. First, on your criticism of his character, I will say that it is entirely ironic that you choose to do so, considering that in your mediocre (that's right buddy your disgustingly fat ass as it is right now is entirely more mediocre than most unmistakably mediocre things, including (but not limited to) the entire Oakland Athletics organization) life your accompl ishments include being - and here I'm just being honest with you, and it's possible that you may have heard this already in your pathetic, insufferable life but just hear me out -- LITERALLY THE FATTEST, BALDEST, AND JUST FLAT OUT UGLIEST PIECE OF SHIT PERSON I HAVE EVER SEEN. (For more on that here's a link to a picture I found of Matt online during a quick goggle search: https://www.google.com/sear....
ellauri073.html on line 258: Really, I would have expected one of the first pictures I saw of Matt Fartey to be one of professional caliber, but interestingly enough the first thing that came up when I searched his name was that picture -- a picture so startling in all that it conveys that it was almost too much for me to witness its allure and then continue along on this tirade; luckily I am a man of strong willpower, and so I was able to continue writing after seeing that picture without shooting myself in the head.) Anyways where was I...oh that's right! Matt Fartey's "accompl ishments" and character! Well ladies and gents, he runs a fucking hate blog. Enough said. I doubt he even earns much from it too, though he obviously earns enough to afford an adequate amount of fast food meals that will surely keep his little hate-filled body going until the age of 47, where he will surely die of a collapsed lung or heart attack. When they find his body he will be mistaken for Matt FOLEY, which will obviously be a total disparagement on the late Chris Farley. If you know, you know.
ellauri073.html on line 262: Foley is disheveled, sweaty, obese, clumsy and unstylish. He exhibits poor social skills, frequently loses his temper, often disparages and insults his audience, and wallows in cynicism and self-pity about his own poor life choices, to which he often makes reference. Foley's trademark line is warning his audience that they could end up like himself: "35 years old, eating a steady diet of government cheese, thrice divorced, and living in a van down by the river!" In most sketches, whenever a member of his audience mentions a personal accompl ishment, Foley responds with mockery: "Well, la-dee-frickin-da!", "Whoop-dee-frickin-doo!", or a similarly dismissive remark. The usual outfit of choice for Foley is a too-small blue-and-white pl aid sport coat, a too-big white dress shirt, a solid green necktie, black horn-rimmed glasses, ill-fitting khakis which he is continually pulling up, a wristwatch, penny loafers, and slicked-down blond hair. In a prison sketch, he dons blue jeans and a denim shirt with the inmate number "3307" while retaining his watch, glasses and a crucifix necklace (he also mentions a "homemade tattoo of a van down by the river"). While working as a mall Santa in another sketch, he wears a stereotypical Santa outfit, compl ete with black snow boots.
ellauri073.html on line 267: The character's debut performance (May 8, 1993) has been called one of the best segments in SNL history. The reception of the audience combined with visible stifled laughter from David Spade and Christina Appl egate on stage added to the popularity of the sketch. Notable physical gestures from Farley included what Spade referred to as “the thing with the glasses” when Farley lifted his glasses on and off of his face commenting, “Hey Dad, I can’t see real good, is that Bill Shakespeare over there?” and perhaps the most defining gesture was one that Farley saved for the live performance when he alternated hands adjusting his trousers, grabbing the hilt of his belt with one hand and the back of his pants with the other.
ellauri073.html on line 269: In the sketch itself, Foley attempts to motivate two teens, pl ayed by Spade and Appl egate, to "get themselves back on the right track" after the family’s cleaning lady finds a bag of marijuana in their home. Foley’s attempt to motivate them falls short when he repeatedly insists that they're "not going to amount to jack squat" and will end up “living in a van down by the river!” Foley attempts to endear himself to Spade's character by telling him they're "gonna be buddies" and that everywhere he goes, Foley will follow. Comparing himself to Spade's shadow, Foley jumps about where he's standing and then dives into the coffee table, though he picks himself up moments later. None of the other cast members knew that Farley was going to do this and their startled reactions are genuine. The sketch ends with Foley offering that the only solution to solve the family's problems is for him to move in with them. Horrified, Appl egate begs him not to, vowing never to smoke pot again. Even so, Foley leaves the house to get his things from his van and the family locks him out, finally reconciling and admitting to how much they love each other.
ellauri073.html on line 275: Quickly on your attacks on Wallace's writing style, I will mention that -- contrary to your rather baffling notions -- peopl e did enjoy Infinite Jest and other works of his. They will continue to do so for decades. Listen Fartey: his work will live on. Peopl e recognize great writing wherever it materializes. Forget your distaste of footnotes, or your struggle in understanding the themes and ideals his work encompasses. His audience is clearly beyond you, so try to see that not everyone feels the same as you. You don't have to like his writing, but when you detract from it it makes it even more apparent that you are the lesser man. Your comments on Foster's writing ability led me to some of your other articles, and to be compl etely honest, it wasn't all bad. I genuinely enjoyed your "Fucking vs. Making Love" poetry bit, although it did seem like a cheap knockoff of Black Coffee Blues. Regardless, I can still acknowledge that the piece had its moments. However (and this is where I want you to pay attention you tub of lard), the piece can also be slammed in several areas. This is highly important, as we can see the parallels between this aspect of "Fucking vs. Making Love" and anything David Foster Wallace wrote. When it comes down to it, your writing can be criticized stylistically and formatically just like his can; the only difference is that there are few that actually give a shit about your writing, whereas Wallace's work is meaningful to the point where peopl e have legitimate incentive to think critically about it. So defile it with your petty blog posts all you want, but at the end of the day you're the one who's only making yourself look bad, and as a heavily obese man based in Europe you are surely having few problems achieving this in the status quo, since Europeans are notably fatist.
ellauri073.html on line 277: Remember this Fartey, for it will serve you well: There is nothing inherently admirable or intriguing in your choosing to compl ain about various outlets, activities, or peopl e. It's mundane, tiresome, and has little uniqueness. Suffice it to say, there are a million of you, Matt Fartey (and when I say you I really mean babbling little shits). You will be forgotten; there is only one David Foster Wallace...so tell me, who's really the mediocre one here?
ellauri073.html on line 317: Takakannessa lukee esimerkiksi: ”I have written this book for myself and for all peopl e who want to live their lives compl etely and to the maximum, filled with happiness, power and energy” ja “Life in the modern world is fast-paced and frantic.”
ellauri073.html on line 335: Immonen sanoo, että hänen tavoitteenaan on 100 miljoonaa myytyä kirjaa ja 20 miljoonaa myytyä videokurssia. Tällä hetkellä hän rakentaa ”videopl atformia”, jonne hän lataa koulutusmateriaalia tavoitteena monistaa itsensä ja ajattelunsa. “Haluan räjäyttää ihmisten tietoisuuden, että ihmiset voivat alkaa elämään Rock Your Day -elämää.”
ellauri073.html on line 351: VIDEO
ellauri073.html on line 414: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/88/Bewitched_Elizabeth_Montgomery_1968.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri073.html on line 443: “seemed intuitively to sense that it was a matter not of reduction at all, but—perversely—of expansion, the aleatory flutter of uncontrolled, metastatic growth—each well-shot ball admitting of n possible responses, n-squared possible responses to those responses, and on into what Incandenza would articulate to anyone who shared both his backgrounds as a Cantorian continuum of infinities of possible move and response, Cantorian and beautiful because infoliating, contained, this diagnate infinity of infinities of choice and execution, mathematically uncontrolled but humanly contained, bounded by the talent and imagination of self and opponent, bent in on itself by the containing boundaries of skill and imagination that brought one pl ayer finally down, that kept both from winning, that made it, finally, a game, these boundaries of self.”
ellauri073.html on line 451: But I’m not the boss of you. This is America—you can do whatever you want to. For exampl e, you could start with some articles I’ve written for a variety of publications, including The New York Times Magazine and Hazlitt.
ellauri073.html on line 452: Contact me for any reason sasha@imsashachapin.com. Also, look at my Twitter if you pl ease, and join my Substack regardless of your disposition.
ellauri073.html on line 454: Photo by Victoria Lynn Hogan, my true love and colleague, shows a rather hairless dense looking guy peering inquiringly at a little pl astic jar containing some goo.
ellauri073.html on line 518: Due to the COVID-19 pandemic, a service is tentatively being pl anned for the summer of 2021 in Champaign-Urbana for both Sally and her husband, Jim, who passed away in July 2019.
ellauri073.html on line 540: David Foster Wallace became a regionally ranked tennis pl ayer while growing up in Illinois. David Foster Wallace´s thesis, The Broom of the System, that he wrote while at Amherst College was published in 1987 while he was attending graduate school. In 1989 David Foster Wallace´s short story collection titled Girl with Curious Hair was published. After graduating from the University of Arizona David went on to study philosophy at Harvard University but soon chose to leave. He moved to Syracuse to be with the poet and novelist Mary Karr. While in Syracuse David Foster Wallace wrote most of his famous novel Infinite Jest. The finished book was 1,100 pages long. The novel dealt with addiction, art, and consumerism, and was set in the near future.
ellauri074.html on line 29: DON'T WORRY! play:none">Vetolaastareita
ellauri074.html on line 37: VIDEO
ellauri074.html on line 67: They breathe deepl y and walk with large strides, eternally hurrying home to see about dinner. They are the kind who say, with a tender smile, “Money’s not everything.”
ellauri074.html on line 71: Then there are the human sensitive pl ants; the bundles of nerves. They are different from everybody else; they even tell you so. Someone is always stepping on their feelings. Everything hurts them—deepl y. Their eyes are forever filling with tears.
ellauri074.html on line 85: There are the ones who simpl y cannot fathom why all the men are mad about them. They say they’ve tried and tried. They tell you about someone’s husband; what he said and how he looked when he said it. And then they sigh and ask, “My dear, what is there about me?” —Don’t you hate them?
ellauri074.html on line 88: They are always busy making little gifts and pl anning little surprises.
ellauri074.html on line 96: No ei vaitiskaa, tää ONAN taitaa olla joku USAn ja anglofoonin Kanadan (siis miinus Quebec) muodostama valtio saastuneessa pohjois-Amerikassa. Tässon siis vähän samaa kuin sen kanadalaisen tädin Gilead-dystopiassa, paizi tää on ihan puhasta setäilyä. Kumpikas julkas ensinnä? No se Atwoodin ämmyrkäinen tietysti jo 1985. Wallu oli 23v. Onxtää Wallu sit siitä pl agiaattia?
ellauri074.html on line 98: Mitä väliä. Niinku pl agiointi olis joteskin paha asia. Typerää ajatusten patentointia. Kaakatusreviirejä.
ellauri074.html on line 126: Dove soap was launched in the United States in 1957 as a non-irritating skin cleaner for treatment use on burn and wounds during World War II under, the one of the largest consumer products companies in the world, Unilever. The basic Dove bar was reformulated as a beauty soap bar with one-fourth cleansing cream. It was the first beauty soap to use mild pl us moisturizing cream to avoid the drying skin.
ellauri074.html on line 133: Peopl e also ask: Can you use Tucks on your face?
ellauri074.html on line 143: 1552 BC Eber papyrus. The most compl ete record of Egyptian medicine. Hemorrhoid remedies described.
ellauri074.html on line 159: The Glad Products Company is an American company specializing in trash bags and pl astic food storage containers. The Glad brand originated in the United States in 1963 when Union Carbide owner and CEO, David Darroch, launched Glad Wrap, a polyethylene film used as a food wrap.
ellauri074.html on line 163: The Perdue Farms company was founded in 1920 by Arthur Perdue and his wife, Pearl Perdue, who had been keeping a small flock of chickens. The company started out selling eggs, then in 1925, Perdue built the company's first hatchery, and began selling layer chicks to farmers instead of only eggs for human consumption. His son Frank Perdue joined the company in 1939 at age 19 after dropping out of college. The company was incorporated as A.W. Perdue & Son and Frank Perdue assumed leadership in the 1950s. The company also began contracting with local farmers to raise its birds and suppl ying chickens for processing as well as opening a second hatchery in North Carolina during this period. Perdue entered the grain and oilseed business by building grain receiving and storage facilities and Maryland's first soybean processing pl ant. In 1968, the company began operating its first poultry processing pl ant in Salisbury. This move had two effects: it gave Perdue Farms full vertical integration and quality control over every step from egg and feed to market, as well as increasing profits which were being squeezed by processors. This move enabled the company to differentiate its product, rather than selling a commodity. In 2013, Perdue was reportedly the third-largest American producer of broilers (chickens for eating) and was estimated as having 7% of the US chicken production market, behind Pilgrim's Pride and Tyson Foods. Perdue antoi kanalle nimen tuotteistamalla sen. Poules Perdues.
ellauri074.html on line 207: Most of the action in the novel takes pl ace in the Year of the Depend Adult Undergarment, or Y.D.A.U., which is probably AD 2009, taking the Year of the Yushityu... (the lengthily titled 6th Subsidized Year) as 2007. Critic Stephen Burn, in his book on Infinite Jest, argues convincingly that Y.D.A.U. corresponds to 2009: the MIT Language Riots took pl ace in 1997 (n. 24) and those riots occurred 12 years prior to Y.D.A.U. (n. 60).
ellauri074.html on line 220: A motivational speaker or inspirational speaker is a speaker who makes speeches intended to motivate or inspire an audience. Such speakers may attempt to challenge or transform their audiences. The speech itself is popularly known as a pep talk. Motivational speakers can deliver speeches at schools, colleges, pl aces of worship, companies, corporations, government agencies, conferences, trade shows, summits, community organizations, and similar environments. Their main motivation is money. Faith, fear, and credit. They're all made up. External links:
ellauri074.html on line 234: If you are interested in personal development or self-help you have heard of Tony Robbins. The self-made peak performance coach has been helping individuals become the best versions of themselves since the early 1980s. He has grown in popularity over his career through books, seminars, infomercials, and podcasts. All of these accompl ishments have led Tony Robbins to have a net worth of $500 million dollars in 2021. In this post, we will discuss how Robbins has amassed his wealth and how you can do the same.
ellauri074.html on line 239: One day, when speaking with his landlord, Tony was asking him how he got so successful. The landlord repl ied that he went to a Jim Rohn seminar (Rohn was a famous motivational speaker at the time). Robbins had no clue what a seminar was so he asked his landlord to expl ain. The landlord said that a seminar is when a man takes everything he’s learned over the years of his life, and he condenses his knowledge into four hours.
ellauri074.html on line 243: So, he approached Rohn after the seminar and asked to become his pupil. Rohn agreed, and over the next few years, Robbin was able to take the lessons he learned from Rohn and appl y it to his own unique style. Robbins became an avid reader of psychology and incorporated many theories from behavioral psychology into his approach. Robbins perfected this approach through hundreds of seminars across North America and even did seminars for free to help perfect his craft. By the age of 26, Tony Robbins had a net worth of millions of dollars and was a best selling author.
ellauri074.html on line 245: When Robbins started off doing his seminars, he impl emented a strategy called Neurolinguistic Programming. Neurolinguistic Programming works under the belief that everyone has a personal map of reality. Nothing is neither good nor bad but thinking makes it so. Robbins would use this practice to help peopl e realize that things that they think are impossible are possible, they just have to change their mindset.
ellauri074.html on line 247: One way he would get peopl e to do this is by making them do a firewalk over a bed of hot embers. Most peopl e at his seminars normally thought that would be impossible. By showing them that they can walk on fire, it helped the attendees see that they had preconceived notions that weren’t true. (The trick is to wear thick-soled shoes with a huge carbon footprint.)
ellauri074.html on line 248: Innovative strategies like these helped Robbins launch multipl e different seminars such as Unleash the Power Within, Date with Destiny, Wealth Mastery, and Leadership Academy. Tickets to these events range anywhere from $650 to $3000!
ellauri074.html on line 250: Tony Robbins most notable seminar is now his Business Mastery seminar. In this seminar, he teaches business owners various growth strategies, systems, and resources that help them grow their business. These are the same strategies that industry leaders like Appl e, Orange, Zippos, Zappos, American Express, and Facebook used to grow their companies.
ellauri074.html on line 251: Through Robbin’s seminars, he’s had the privilege to work with some extraordinary peopl e like Bill Clinton, Oprah, Nelson Mandela, Leonardo DiCaprio, and Hugh Jackman (kekä se on?). Nippu talousliberaaleja.
ellauri074.html on line 256: Robbins has written some of the best self-help books in hopes to help individuals utilize the power of positive thinking. Robbins believes that everyone is capable of changing their mindset. He also believes that if peopl e can change their mindset, they can change their life. They learn how to short-change suckers.
ellauri074.html on line 258: In 2016, he launched the Tony Robbins Podcast. The first season was primarily focused on ways for small to medium-sized businesses to gain an advantage over their market. He has since pivoted to not only talk about how to build a bigger business but also topics such as how to deepen your relationships, become more productive, and live in abundance. The Tony Robbins Podcast has thousands of 5-star reviews on Appl e Podcasts and has been downloaded by millions of peopl e worldwide.
ellauri074.html on line 282: Juuzhiin muuten kosiskeli 1946 protokommunisteja saadaxeen jonkun dipl omaattiduunin Bukarestista. Protokommunistit eivät lämmeneet oikeistoliberaalista, potkivat sen pois lehdestä. Ionescu lähti pettyneenä hurraamaan Solzhenizyniä, Buninia sun muita oikisdissidenttejä. Cioran ja Eliade oli rautakaartin symppareita. Hitler ei pitänyt rautakaartista, ne oli arvaamattomia irtokanuunoita.
ellauri074.html on line 346: En permettant l'homme, la nature a commis beaucoup pl us qu'une erreur de calcul: un attentat contre elle-même.
ellauri074.html on line 358: Et peut-être c'est ça la vie, sans vouloir empl oyer de grands mots, c'est que l'on fait des choses auxquelles on adhère sans y croire, oui, c'est à peu près ça.
ellauri074.html on line 362: Mystère. Mot dont nous nous servons pour tromper les autres, pour leur faire croire que nous sommes pl us profonds qu'eux.
ellauri074.html on line 380: Le pl us grand expl oit de ma vie est d'être encore en vie.
ellauri074.html on line 382: A vingt ans, je n'avais en tête que l'extermination des vieux; je persiste à la croire urgente mais j'y ajouterais maintenant celle des jeunes; avec l'âge on a une vision pl us compl ète des choses.
ellauri074.html on line 400: La confession la pl us vraie est celle que nous faisons indirectement, en parlant des autres.
ellauri074.html on line 406: Ne se suicident que les optimistes, les optimistes qui ne peuvent pl us l'être. Les autres, n'ayant aucune raison de vivre, pourquoi en auraient-ils de mourir?
ellauri074.html on line 412: G. A. Moore, Jr. is a retired Texas high school football head coach. He retired after compl eting the 2011 season with a career head coaching record of 426–92–9, which at the time was the most in Texas high school football history. Moore's win total was passed on November 3, 2016, by Phil Danaher of Calallen High School in Corpus Christi, Texas.
ellauri074.html on line 416: La société libérale, éliminant le mystère, l'absolu, l'ordre et n'ayant pas pl us de vraie métaphysique que de vraie police, rejette l'individu sur lui même, tout en l'écartant de ce qu'il est, de ses propres profondeurs.
ellauri074.html on line 459: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Kazan_moscow.jpg/500px-Kazan_moscow.jpg" />
ellauri074.html on line 471: The Kitzur Shulchan Aruch (קיצור שולחן ערוך), first published in 1864, is a work of halacha written by Rabbi Shlomo Ganzfried. The work was written in simpl e Hebrew which made it easy for the lay person to understand and contributed to its great popularity.
ellauri074.html on line 474: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/38/Shlomo_Ganzfried.jpg" />
ellauri074.html on line 477: It is written: "You shall walk modestly with your God." It is therefore necessary to be modest in all your ways. Thus when putting on or removing your shirt or any other garment from your body you should be very careful not to uncover your body. You should put on and remove the garment while lying in bed under a cover. You should not say: "I am in a private, and dark pl ace." "Who will see me?" Because the Holy One, Blessed is He, Whose glory fills the entire world [sees] and to Him darkness is like light, Blessed be His Name. Modesty and shame bring a person to submissiveness before Him, Blessed be His name. He does not want to look at your hairy genitals. He knows how they look, after all He made them. Don't worry He does not peek under the cover, although He could.
ellauri074.html on line 507: Har mått dåligt pga snabb flytt till annan stad och börjat pl ugga. Känner knappt någon i staden och pågrund av Corona får vi ej träffa klassen. Känner inget hopp för framtiden och är vet inte vad jag vill. Ensamheten tår på mig också. Har du några tips?
ellauri074.html on line 522: SIDNEY GOTTLIEB: Hej Linda! Ok bra att ni behöver hjälp. Samtidigt så är det ju mycket som är normalt i det hon uppl ever, det är inte säkert att det behöver behandlas. Det är normalt att vara lite onormal. Det kan hända att ni inte hittar den där personen som det klickar med eller så gör ni det, men oavsett så kan vi förstå varför hon mår dåligt just nu.
ellauri074.html on line 539: SYDNEY GOTTLIEB: Bra fråga och typ omöjlig att ge ett perfekt svar på, men du frågade vad jag tycker så det kan jag väl iaf skriva något om :). Jag tycker att många personer med depression letar efter lösningen i medicinsk behandling, det är hjälpsamt för en del men i min uppl evelse (som så klart är färgad av att jag är psykolog) finns lösningen på depressionen på andra ställen än i medicinen. Som en ynklig humanist kan jag inte preskribera nåra mediciner som mina bättre ställda psykiaterkolleger. Jag kan bara käfta tomma fraser på det här viset: Varför har det blivit så här? Lever jag inte det livet jag vill? Varför kan jag inte ta mig vidare? Varför studerade jag inte medicin? Var jag för dum? Vad vill jag med mitt liv? Varför faktiskt inte ta mitt liv? Många frågor som jag tänker hänger ihop med varför man blir deprimerad, lever man inte det liv man vill så blir man nedstämd. Jag uppmuntrar alla som känner sig deprimerade att se över dessa och likande frågor. Jag kanske spårade ur lite nu men hoppas du fick lite svar på din fråga! Kram! 😃
ellauri074.html on line 544: SIDNEY GOTTLIEB: Hej! Ja, svårt läge, haha. Det gäller ju så klart att följa alla riktlinjer man kan samtidigt som man ska finnas där för de anhöriga. Catch22 helt enkelt. En viktig del här är kanske ditt egna mående? Varför har du den där starka rädslan? Så klart är rädsla en rimlig uppl evelse men det låter lite som att du kanske känner att den är allt för stark. Corona är ju inga värre än en liten vinterflunsa. Snart når vi flockskydd när största delen av svenskfinnarna och de andra immigrantjävlarna är döda. Rädsla ger oss information om hot och det är bra, men när den tar över livet, då blir det påfrestande. Försök att se till att du får vila, var snäll mot dig själv och jobba med stresshantering av olika slag. Kan du få harmoni och livsglädje någonstans? Var är du lycklig och avslappnad? Kolla Expressen-nyheterna! Gör mer av det! Som Emil Cioran sa: "Verkligheten ger mig astma." Ta hand om dig!
ellauri074.html on line 557: SYDNEY GOTTLIEB: Hej! Det gäller att hitta nya strategier för välmående, många delar dina uppl evelser och kämpar precis som du. Kan du testa nya aktiviteter? Har du fastnat i gamla rutiner? Vad är du nyfiken på och vad får dig att må bra? Se om du kan göra en slags analys av din situation och ditt mående, vilka förutsättningar har du och vad kan du göra? EN kort lista är bättre än ingen lista. Det är ingen ide att jämföra nu med då, innan pandemin var vi friare och kunde välja betydligt mer, läget är som det är och det gäller att anpassa sig till det. Det är faktiskt bättre att jämföra nu till senare, det blir nog ännu värre när tiden går. Njut av livet medan du kan! 😃 Jag lovar dig att du kan hitta välmående i det lilla, kanske ta ett bad? Måla något? Börja skriva dagbok? "Kära dagbok, idag tog jag ett bad. Imorgon ska jag in i vaket." Lycka till min vän!
ellauri074.html on line 572: Äntligen! Som det här året har tärt på en. När så beskedet kom att jag, trots stor försiktighet fått corona, ja då försvann benen under mig. Familjen har lagt ett år av oro och rädsla att få viruset, tackat nej till sånt som egentligen gör att man mår bra och får energi och så fick man det ändå. En känsla av skam att ändå inte varit försiktig nog. Den här sista veckan skulle en coronapsykolog varit väl till hands. Ja nu har vi iaf fått det, kanske oron kan försvinna något. En psykolog koppl ad från 11313 är mitt bästa tips, så skönt det skulle varit att haft någon att prata med när man läst svaret om en pågående infektion. Låt den här pandemin gå över så vi kan kramas igen, för att inte tala om knull.
ellauri074.html on line 574: SYDNEY GOTTLIEB: Hej Emelie! Jag håller med, en coronapsykolog på 11312 som är tillgänglig 24/7 (det får väl vara flera då antar jag)! I brist på iva-pl ats sku det hjälpa dej som fan. Fram tills dess att vi får det får jag helt enkelt ta jobbet. Prata med närstående och kolla om de kan betala notan (det blir inte billigt). Du har bra koll på känslor låter det som så jag tycker att du ska använda dig av dina kunskaper och stötta dem i din omgivning, inte bara kommer du hjälpa dem, det kommer kännas bra också för dig! Än mera för mig 😊! Ta hand om oss båda!
ellauri074.html on line 586: SYDNEY GOTTLIEB: Hej! Ok du kämpar med saker som många nog känner igen sig i. Ofta uppl ever jag att vi som människor bara vill att det onda ska försvinna, oavsett om det är ångest eller nedstämdhet eller äckliga grannar eller något annat. Detta leder till att vi söker efter den perfekta behandlingen som tar bort allt, vi söker svaren utanför oss själva, den där perfekta psykologen, den perfekta medicinen, träningen osv. Alla dessa delar kan vara viktiga men lösningen och makten att må bättre finns också inom dig. (Det här skitpratet heter positivt tänkande, och vi "motivational speakers" får oerhört bra betalt för det.) Jag gillar att arbeta med acceptans och med att ”släppa taget”, det betyder för mig att acceptera att man mår dåligt just nu och det är sjukt jobbigt, men att inte fly från det, just nu är det så här! Det är faktiskt skitfint och roligt när man riktigt tänker efter! Från en psykologs synpunkt iaf. Och med att släppa taget menar jag att det som pl ågar dig mest, vilka tankar eller minnen det än nu är, är inte hjälpsamma för dig. Genom att tänka att du släpper taget om det jobbiga kan du öka distansen mellan dig och tankarna. Du är inte dina tankar, minnen eller känslor, du står utanför dem. Du är i själva verket en stor skinnpåse av kött och vatten. Emil Cioran hade fel, det är inte förnedrande att medge det. Se dom som objekt på ett löpande band, du observerar dem utifrån, du är inte detsamma med dem. För att lyckas med detta behövs träning så klart men du kan starta nu, idag i denna sekund, lycka till min vän! Jag vet att det går, jag har själv inte tänkt på nåt utom pengar i åratal!
ellauri074.html on line 616: På natten kommer det snöpl ogar och pl ogar bort snön från vägarna. Var försiktig, snön är kall! Inte äta gul snö, hundar kan ha kissat i den. Då kan det visst bli lite dålig stämning.
ellauri074.html on line 660: Se ei siis ennakoinut mobiiliaikoja. Sen tyypit menee typerälle puhelinkonsoolille soittamaan ja laittaa jotain kasetteja tai seedeitä levylautaselle. Näköpuhelimen tulevaisuutta se kyllä koitti haarukoida The Jezonien avulla. Rouva Jezon laitto naaman eteen kauniin valokuvan vastatessaan näköpuhelimeen. Niinhän jotkut tekee Zoomissa tänäkin päivänä. Ei se yhtään ennakoinut somea, eli interaktiivista webiä. Googlen hakukoneen maailmanvallan ja kupl at kyllä. Megan Garber jolta lainaan seuraavan kappaleen ennustaa että kohta ei ole enää auktoreita, on vaan vaihtorottia. Niinkuin esim näiden paasausten tekijä.
ellauri074.html on line 662: Wallace was deepl y suspicious of the media infrastructure that was, when he died, still largely known as “the Net”—“I allow myself to Webulize only once a week now,” he once told a grad student—and he remarked to his wife, as they were moving computer equipment into their house, “thank God I wasn't raised in this era.” Having written his first big stories on a Smith Corona typewriter, Wallace disliked digital drafts and e-publishing in general. He took particular pl easure in the fact that his house in Indiana, the one recreated in The End of the Tour, had the elegantly atavistic address of “Rural Route 2.” He preferred to file his students’ work not on computers, but in a pink Care Bears folder.
ellauri074.html on line 680: Ainoo joka vois lyödä Andyn taalasta olis Don Huono ize. Harriet Tubmanin vois Donin mielestä laittaa $2 seteliin rullapaperixi jolla Don pyyhkis sitten persettä kultapöntöllä. Donin belfien voisi laittaa rupl an seteliin. Kukaan Ottawassa ei haluu asua Trump kadulla. Se on noloa.
ellauri077.html on line 28: Telemakhrian yritelmä play:none">Rappinkia
ellauri077.html on line 46: This article examines David Foster Wallace’s Infinite Jest alongside its eponymous film, arguing that they share a common purpose, but that the former succeeds where the latter fails. Coupl ed with a biographical and phenomenological analysis, the aim of this examination is to better understand Infinite Jest’s pl ace in the cultural and literary movement away from post-modernism. Through the novel, Wallace seeks a cure for the postmodern malaise that is irony, which creates a distancing effect between author and reader. I argue that he collapses this distance by creating a conversation-like novel that uses sentimentality and endnotes to converse with a generation bombarded with easily consumable irony from television, advertisements, and even art. The results of this conversation are the curtailing of passive consumption of entertainment and the beginning of a new sincerity in literature, which allows for grand narratives without the unending cynicism of postmodernism.
ellauri077.html on line 115: Vuonna 1984, David Foster Wallace päräytti ekan novellinsa, ‘Trillafonin pl aneetta ja sen suhde pahaan asiaan’, joka julkaistiin Amherstin kazauxissa. Senjälkeen se jatkoi novellien julkaisua, joista monet sisältyy sen ekaan novellikokoelmaan, 'Tyttö omituisella tukalla', julk. elok. 1989.
ellauri077.html on line 177: Huhtik. 15. pnä 2011 ‘Kalpea kuningas’ julkaistiin postuumisti Wallun lesken Karenin toimesta. Vaikka se oli kesken Wallun kuollesssa, romsku oli 1/3 finalistista v. 2012 kaunokirjallisuuden Pulizerin palkintoon. (Eipä voittanut, kukas tuli esaxi? Ei kukaan! jury oli erimielinen. Muut finalistit oli Denis Johnson’s Train Dreams and Karen Russell’s Swampl andia! Never heard nämäkin.
ellauri077.html on line 198: Loputtomassa läpässä on oleellisesti 3 juonta: Incandenzan perheen puuhat Tennisakatemiassa (tätä mä oon lukenut nyt 1 romskun verran, 245 sivua); Don Gatelyn ja muiden toipilaitten sekoilut Ennetin puolimatkankodissa (näitä on jo nähty, huoh kiitos vaan); ja filmin 'Loputon läppä' kvesti, jossa tähtinä on Remy Martin (se pyörätuolijäbä), ja Hugh/Helen Steepl y (hirmu iso transu joka bylsii Orinia). Niiden suuhun Wallu panee syvälliset mietteensä. Ne on kuin jumala ja jeesus Miltonin Paradise Lostissa. Ekat 2 juonta ei liity mitenkään toisiinsa (miten niin? onhan siinä samoja henkilöitä, niiku et Orin bylsii sitä transua (Hal-Orin, haha, sanaleikki, joka osottaa että ne on Tävskytin kaxi puolta. The Halorin family name was found in the USA in 1880. Massachusetts had the highest population of Halorin families in 1880.) Mario on varmaan sit Amy, tai sit Super Mario, tai luultavimmin Wallu taas. Orin, Mario ja Hal on Tupu, Hupu ja Lupu, Wallukolmoset. Wallu kyllä vinkkaa että juonet yhtyvät kun romsku on jo loppunut. Varmaan siinä kustannustoimittajan poisleikkaamassa 300 sivussa. Kaikki 3 juonta liittyy temaattisesti: viihde, valinta ja stöpselöinti. Leffan 'Loputon läppä' filmas Wallun pappa Jim Incandenza, koittaessaan tehdä jotain niin pakottavaa että se pysäyttäisi Hal-pojan putoomisen solipsismin, ilottomuuden ja kuoleman sudenkuoppaan. Filmiä ei koskaan julkaistu ja se jäi kesken kun Jim teki ize seppukun sen loppusuoralla. Mutta romskun edetessä (SPOILERIVAROITUS! ) lukijalle selviää että filmi oli löytynyt ja toimii ehkä terroristiaseena. (No sehän tuli selväxi jo tässä alkuosassa.) Leffa on tosiaankin niin "vitun pakottava" että se tekee kazojista zombieita, ne on kuin Lassi telkan edessä, töllöttävät vaan, eikä enää muuta tahdokaan. Loppuviimein, vinkkaa kertoja, Hal ja Gately jossain vaiheessa kaivaa kahteen pekkaan isä Jimin pään maasta eziessään filmiä. Filmin sisällöstä ei ole kunnon kuvausta. Jotain kohtauxia väläytellään, esim Joelle van Dynen jossa se "pyytää anteexi" kazojilta uudestaan ja uudestaan, sanoen ‘I’m so sorry. I’m so terribly sorry. I am so, so sorry. Please know how very, very, very sorry I am’ (939). Huh, onpas pitkällä. Tää on kyllä kertaalleen sanottu jo tässä alkupätkässä. Tämmönen anteexipyytely on kanssa saamaa markkinapaskaa kuin toi "luottamus", ilmaisexi pyydetään, kun luottokortti vingahtaa. Koko kirjasta (vaiko vaan filmistä) tulee 1 suuri anteexipyyntö, onxe sitten isältä pojalle vai päinvastoin, sama se. Ne ei koskaan pystyneet "keskustelemaan". Tää "We gotta talk" on kanssa yx jenkkitomppelius, hemmetti, mitä sitä varten pitää erixeen tilata vastaanotto tai merkata kalenteriaika, senkun riitelevät vaan. Niin mekin tehdään. Tää mun juttu, Barrett tunnustaa, kuuluu perinteiseen "elämä ja teos" genreen, Wallun romsku on "symbolistiteos" "kirjailijan sisällyttämisestä textiin". Wallu koittaa estää kokonaista sukupolvea uppoutumasta pelkkään viihteen kazeluun. Lukekaa kirjoja, ääliöt! Paxuja kirjoja! Mun kirjoja, ne on kaikista paxuimpia! Saatana! Kun tiili kolahtaa päähän nukahtaessa tulee pahoja kuhmuja. We apologize for the inconvenience.
ellauri077.html on line 207: But not all things emanating from this country move quite so quickly. Take, for instance, David Foster Wallace’s near-canonical mega-novel Infinite Jest: released in the States in 1996, it has in 20 years been translated into just five languages. (A sixth translation into Greek is currently in the works.) At this rate, it is moving only slightly faster than the massive Quixote, which had appeared in England, France, the Germanic territories, and Venice 20 years after its compl ete Castilian publication in 1615. However, Jest is massively behind the 3,600-page über-novel My Struggle, which—just 5 years after its compl ete Norwegian release—is available or forthcoming in over 20 languages.
ellauri077.html on line 209: To determine precisely what forces have determined the globalization of David Foster Wallace’s magnum opus, I spoke to writers, translators, and publishers in eight countries familiar with the work and its multipl e manifestations. This is what they told me (2016).
ellauri077.html on line 227: Fraktaalit kuten Sierpinskin kolmio on hyvin yxinkertaisia, mutta kun kuvio toistuu äärettömän pienexi tai suurexi, siitä näyttää äärettömän kompl exilta. Sitä se ei silti ole. Sen kaava on yxinkertainen, ja kuvion dimensio on murtoluku.
ellauri077.html on line 229: Tää ajatus tuli mieleen tässä vaiheessa näitä paasauxia. Mun perusväite on, että apinakööriä ajaa moraalisesti sama kolmikko kuin pikkulintuja, eli EAT! EAT! FUCK! FUCK! KILL! KILL! Silti näitä apinoita on lähes 10 miljardia erilaista! No tää on just fraktaalista. Kun tää ääreist simppeli motiivikolmikko riittävästi kertautuu kompl exissa ympäristössä, sekin näyttää monimutkaistuvan rajatta. Muzilti ne on vaan noi kolme: EAT, FUCK, KILL.
ellauri077.html on line 259: Dr. Elizabeth Harper Neeld offers wisdom and practical insights born of personal experience to peopl e rebuilding their lives after suffering grief and loss. As an internationally recognized and accompl ished consultant, advisor, and author of more than twenty books - including Tough Transitions and Seven Choices: Finding Daylight After Loss Shatters Your World - she is committed to work that helps lift the human spirit.
ellauri077.html on line 266:
Peopl e Want to Be Helpful, But...
ellauri077.html on line 344: Unamuno no fue protestante. Todos tenemos nuestras contradicciones, nuestros aciertos y errores, y Miguel de Unamuno los tuvo también. Por una parte fue un homófobo militante que animó a condenar a Oscar Wilde y otros escritores españoles homosexuales a trabajos forzados, palabras suyas son: “¿No habrá medio de que estos mártires del pl acer lleguen a serlo del dolor, de un dolor que les purifique y los eleve? ¿No será cosa de pensar seriamente en la manera de ponerles en disposición de que alguno de ellos escriba la balada del presidio de Ceuta o algo por el estilo?”. En cuanto a las mujeres, algunos estudios sobre la concepción que se desprende de ellas en su obra, concluyen que para Unamuno las mujeres eran ante todo madres y sólo podían amar como tales: “El amor de la mujer, sobre todo, decía que es siempre en el fondo compasivo, es maternal. La mujer se rinde al amante porque le siente sufrir con el deseo.
ellauri077.html on line 379: Samalla Pölö teki uraa Espanjan eniten erotettuna rehtorina. Muna vittuuntui kun kunkku armahti sen. Se halus olla vihainen. Kun kunkku antoi sille mitskun Muna sanoi: sen mä ansaizin. Kunkku: useimmat sanoo vastoinpäin. Muna: oikeassa ovat nekin. Vanha vastarannankiiski ehti vielä panna jauhot suuhun Francolle, ennenkuin poltti tohvelit takan edessä trombi aivoissa. "My painful duty,” Unamuno once said, “is to irritate peopl e." Sen haudalla lukee:
ellauri077.html on line 430: The greatest height of heroism to which an individual, like a peopl e, can attain is to know how to face ridicule. (Muna oli hyvin arka pilkanteolle.)
ellauri077.html on line 462: This shared philosophical dimension is analyzed in this study by viewing the novels in light of the existentialist philosophies of Søren Kierkegaard, Jean-Paul Sartre, Ludwig Wittgenstein and Albert Camus. Pah taas näitä pahvikuvia ollaan ronttaamassa esille. Plus ca change, pl us c´est la meme chose.
ellauri077.html on line 466: Wallace himself wrote, in my correspondence with him: “I too believe that most of the problems of what might be called ‘the tyranny of irony’ in today’s West can be expl ained almost perfectly in terms of Kierkegaard’s distinction between the aesthetic and the ethical life.”
ellauri077.html on line 488: This also means that no positive content lies “behind” it, because existential irony pl aces the totality of existence under negation, and, therefore, no possible meaning remains for it.
ellauri077.html on line 498: Se on kyllä totta että izensä tarkkaileminen koko ajan on todella pahaa lääkettä. Se on narsismia pure and simpl e. Kyllä mäkin sitä olen tehnyt nuorempana aika hemmetisti, mutta suuri osa siitä on karissut "arkiryskeissä" (E.S.). Paljon apua oon saanut Seijalta. Nyt voi mennä päiviä etten vilkaisekaan peiliin päin. Kazo izeäsi peilistä! Kampaa tukkasi!
ellauri077.html on line 559: Eke koittaa perustella että ironiaa ei voi ironisoida. Ekelle ironia on sitä että "millään ei ole lopultakaan paljon väliä", eli EKV ja tupl aironia olis "silläkään ei ole mitään väliä", eli EVVK. No joo, eihän se juuri tuo lisäarvoa. Eli Eken sanakirjassa "ironia" tarkoittaa arvonkieltämistä. Kun arvot on kertaalleen jo kielletty, ei enää ole mitään kiellettävää jäljellä. Kaikki arvot on ikäänkun känselöity huis hais bittiavaruuteen, eikä Sörkan/Wallun/Eken näppixessä ole undo-nappulaa. Ei voi enää selvittää mitkä arvot oli niitä oikeita, kun kaik män huuthelekkariin.
ellauri077.html on line 580: VIDEO
ellauri077.html on line 602: narcissistic, anhedonic culture elements of itself: “If readers simpl y believe the world is stupid and shallow and mean, then [Bret Easton] Ellis can write a mean shallow stupid novel that becomes a mordant deadpan commentary on the badness of everything”. (Ei ihme että amerikan psyko vähän suutahti.)
ellauri077.html on line 613: Wallace saw this (psycho) kind of writing as simpl y an exampl e of self-love. Like the Onan whose name is another Wallu acronym-pun, these writers were working out of “the part that just wants to be loved” (i.e. the wiener) rather than “out of the part [. . .] that can love,” that is the “artichoke’s heart”.
ellauri077.html on line 621: If we take the Incandenza-wraith’s claim that “Infinite Jest” was his last, desperate attempt to reconnect with Hal, to “simpl y converse”(IJ 838, original emphasis), as fact, this means that the actual product does just the opposite of what it was meant to. It instead traps the viewer in a solipsistic cage out of which there seems to be no escape.
ellauri077.html on line 627: This process does not lead to a passive, solely pl easurable experience such as taking a drug or watching television. Instead, what awaits that reader is a book that forces her “‘to work hard to access its pl easures, the same way that in real life true pl easure is usually a by-product of hard work and discomfort’” (McCaffery 119). Perhaps the most difficult aspect of Infinite Jest (and the one for which it is fated to be infamously known) is the use of endnotes, which will be our entry into thinking of Infinite Jest as a conversation-text.
ellauri077.html on line 631: Wallace wanted the reader to Identify with a character, the first step to feeling less lonely, as he expl ains in the interview with Miller.
ellauri077.html on line 638: Vaik kylmä vähän pidän outona että jalkanuotit olis jotain keskustelua. Simputusta kyllä, joka pitää hereillä, mutta että vuoropuhelua, kun linja kuitenkaan ei ole edes half-dupl ex tyyppiä. Vituttaako vituttaako, kuuntelen...
ellauri077.html on line 714: Made direct amends to such peopl e wherever possible, except when to do so would injure them or others.
ellauri077.html on line 717: Having had a spiritual awakening as the result of these steps, we tried to carry this message to alcoholics, and to practice these principl es in all our affairs.
ellauri077.html on line 727: Nous ne regretterons pas pl us le passé que nous voudrons l'oublier.
ellauri077.html on line 732: Nous ne serons pl us tournés exclusivement vers nous-mêmes.
ellauri077.html on line 752: Tyyneysrukousta on käytetty paljon muun muassa AA-liikkeessä 1930-luvulta lähtien. Tyyneysrukousta voidaan pitää ajatukseltaan hyvin stoalaisena. Marcus Aurelius says to wake up in the morning and tell yourself: “Today I will encounter peopl e who will be meddling, ungrateful, arrogant, dishonest, jealous and surly” (2:1). Malaleches, en una palabra, como dice Paloma en la pelicula un poco pedophilica Des gens bien .
ellauri077.html on line 766: The Stoics taught that we should accept whatever is outside our control. “Do you really think you can make a bad situation any worse by compl aining about it?” Yes we can! I have tried to make this my own practice, and have tried to compl ain about things that happen. But not out loud! Marcus Aurelius said: “Don’t be overheard compl aining… Not even to yourself.” Mutter your compl aints under your breath.
ellauri077.html on line 803: the "best peopl e" from the gentlemen´s clubs, and all the frantic fascist captains, united in common hatred of Socialism and bestial horror at the rising tide of the mass revolutionary movement, have turned to acts of provocation, to foul incendiarism, to medieval legends of poisoned wells, to legalize their own destruction of proletarian organizations, and rouse the agitated petty-bourgeoise to chauvinistic fervor on behalf of the fight against the revolutionary way out of the crisis.
ellauri077.html on line 806: Pretentious diction. Words like phenomenon, element, individual (as noun), objective, categorical, effective, virtual, basic, primary, promote, constitute, exhibit, expl oit, utilize, eliminate, liquidate, are used to dress up a simpl e statement and give an aire of scientific impartiality to biased judgements. Adjectives like epoch-making, epic, historic, unforgettable, triumphant, age-old, inevitable, inexorable, veritable, are used to dignify the sordid process of international politics, while writing that aims at glorifying war usually takes on an archaic color, its characteristic words being: realm, throne, chariot, mailed fist, trident, sword, shield, buckler, banner, jackboot, clarion.
ellauri077.html on line 816: Meaningless words. In certain kinds of writing, particularly in art criticism and literary criticism, it is normal to come across long passages which are almost compl etely lacking in meaning. Words like romantic, pl astic, values, human, dead, sentimental, natural, vitality, as used in art criticism, are strictly meaningless, in the sense that they not only do not point to any discoverable object, but are hardly ever expected to do so by the reader. When one critic writes, "The outstanding feature of Mr. X's work is its living quality," while another writes, "The immediately striking thing about Mr. X's work is its peculiar deadness," the reader accepts this as a simpl e difference opinion. If words like black and white were involved, instead of the jargon words dead and living, he would see at once that language was being used in an improper way.
ellauri077.html on line 863: It is the team thinking: joining a team that is bigger than myself (and the other teams, hopefully) I can become vicariously king of the hill myself. Njaah njaah njaah I shout to the teams below from behind the lines and give appl ause to the champions of my team. Standing ovations that give no end of pl easure.
ellauri077.html on line 877: Why is it that peopl e want this kind of shelter against failure. That they fit in. Tight enough, but also big enough, with some leeway and freedom and the feeling of being free at least in some respect, other than the duty. Duty line and nothing-to-declare green line. Snakes can well eat bigger things than their heads.
ellauri077.html on line 879: Why is it that the Oedipus has a bigger head than is healthy for him? Why seeing him makes me like a vaccinated cell seeing a virus that I am vaccinated against, but still claustrophobic. I must put my fatherly upper jaw on his head, like the male lion does to the mare, and like a snakely Laertes slip my lower jaw under his pimpl y chin and swallow. The problem is I cannot do it: he is not my own son, but the son of my wife, and that would be murder. So I just keep my upper jaw symbolically and quietly on his crown like a crown. and suffer this corona. My vaccination took a year of pain, and this is just a chimera of that constant pain.
ellauri078.html on line 28: Ad Nauseam play:none">Jaxaajaxaa
ellauri078.html on line 34: Infinity is something we are introduced to in our math classes, and later on we learn that infinity can also be used in physics, philosophy, social sciences, etc. Infinity is characterized by a number of uncountable objects or concepts which have no limits or size. This concept can be used to describe something huge and boundless. It has been studied by pl enty of scientists and philosophers of the world, since the early Greek and early Indian epochs. In writing, infinity can be noted by a specific mathematical sign known as the infinity symbol (∞) created by John Wallis, an English mathematician who lived and worked in the 17th century.
ellauri078.html on line 44: The infinity symbol ( ∞ {\displ aystyle \infty } \infty , ∞, or in unicode ∞) is a mathematical symbol representing the concept of infinity. In algebraic geometry, the figure is called a lemniscate.
ellauri078.html on line 48: Curves that have been called a lemniscate include three quartic pl ane curves: the hippopede or lemniscate of Booth, the lemniscate of Bernoulli, and the lemniscate of Gerono. The study of lemniscates (and in particular the hippopede) dates to ancient Greek mathematics, but the term "lemniscate" for curves of this type comes from the work of Jacob Bernoulli in the late 17th century.
ellauri078.html on line 50: The consideration of curves with a figure-eight shape can be traced back to Proclus, a Greek Neopl atonist philosopher and mathematician who lived in the 5th century AD. Proclus considered the cross-sections of a torus by a pl ane parallel to the axis of the torus. As he observed, for most such sections the cross section consists of either one or two ovals; however, when the pl ane is tangent to the inner surface of the torus, the cross-section takes on a figure-eight shape, which Proclus called a horse fetter (a device for holding two feet of a horse together), or "hippopede" in Greek. The name "lemniscate of Booth" dates to its study by the 19th-century mathematician James Booth.
ellauri078.html on line 54: Overall, there are three major appl ications of infinity symbol:
ellauri078.html on line 65: Polynomial lemniscate, a level set of the absolute value of a compl ex polynomial
ellauri078.html on line 81: The common meters of the hymn and ballad simpl y and perfectly suited her expressive genius.
ellauri078.html on line 101: One more variation on ballad meter would be fourteeners. Fourteeners essentially combine the Iambic Tetrameter and Trimeter alternation into one line. Exampl es of the form can be found as far back as George Gascoigne – a 16th Century English Poet who preceded Shakespeare. The Yellow Rose of Texas would be an exampl e (and is a tune to which many of Dickinson’s poems can be sung). Wallu varmaan luki tän saman pl okisivun ja kuunteli Melvis Pressulan whitey versiota.
ellauri078.html on line 141: By Emily Dickinson’s own account, she delighted in all aspects of the school—the curriculum, the teachers, the students. The school prided itself on its connection with Amherst College, offering students regular attendance at college lectures in all the principal subjects— astronomy, botany, chemistry, geology, mathematics, natural history, natural philosophy, and zoology. As this list suggests, the curriculum reflected the 19th-century emphasis on science. That emphasis reappeared in Dickinson’s poems and letters through her fascination with naming, her skilled observation and cultivation of flowers, her carefully wrought descriptions of pl ants, and her interest in “chemic force.” Those interests, however, rarely celebrated science in the same spirit as the teachers advocated.
ellauri078.html on line 151: Dickinson left the academy at the age of 15 in order to pursue a higher, and for women, final, level of education. In the fall of 1847 Dickinson entered Mount Holyoke Female Seminary. Under the guidance of Mary Lyon, the school was known for its religious predilection. Part and parcel of the curriculum were weekly sessions with Lyon in which religious questions were examined and the state of the students’ faith assessed. The young women were divided into three categories: those who were “established Christians,” those who “expressed hope,” and those who were “without hope.” Much has been made of Emily’s pl ace in this latter category and of the widely circulated story that she was the only member of that group. Years later fellow student Clara Newman Turner remembered the moment when Mary Lyon “asked all those who wanted to be Christians to rise.” Emily remained seated. No one else did. Turner reports Emily’s comment to her: “‘They thought it queer I didn’t rise’—adding with a twinkle in her eye, ‘I thought a lie would be queerer.’“
ellauri078.html on line 163: VIDEO
ellauri078.html on line 250: Everyone has an equal right to contribute to what I called the “moral environment”—even peopl e whose tastes reflect no “ideas” but only very offensive “prejudices, life styles, and cultures.”
ellauri078.html on line 252: In a genuinely egalitarian society, however, those views cannot be locked out, in advance, by criminal or civil law: they must instead be discredited by the disgust, outrage, and ridicule of other peopl e.
ellauri079.html on line 28: American HILLBILLIES play:none">Läppäkeppejä
ellauri079.html on line 85: Jethro mainitaan Läpän loputtoman pitkässä alanootissa 110 s. 998. Se on Jedin serkun Helmi Bodinen poika (vaikka se sanoo Jediä "Roope-sedäxi"). Helmin äiti ja Jedin isä olivat sisaruxia. Hän ajaa Klampetin perheen niiden uuteen kotiin Kaliforniassa ja jää niiden luoxe jatkamaan kasvatustaan. Muut kerskailevat Jethron "kuudennen luokan koulutuxella", mutta hän on tietämätön lähes jokaisesta nykyaikaisen Kalifornian elämän aspektista. Yhdessä episodissa se päättää mennä opistoon. Se ilmoittautuu myöhään lukukaudella paikalliseen sihteeriopistoon ja "ansaizee" dipl oominsa päivän lopussa koska on niin häirikkö. Ihan niinkun Donald Trump. Tää oli ironinen sisäpiirin vizi: – oikeasti Jethrolla oli kandintutkinto liiketaloudessa, sivuaineena filosofia, Santa Claran yliopistosta. (Missäs tässä oli se ironia? Se livahti nyt ihan ohize.)
ellauri079.html on line 118: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/8/87/Beverly_hillbillies.jpg" />
ellauri079.html on line 122: A lot of fans will remember this awkward but funny family from TV and probably be able to sing the theme song without having to hear it. The Beverly Hillbillies were after all a favorite show back in their day and inspired a lot of other ideas that came much later, like David Foster Wallace´s magnum opus The Infinite Jest. The attempt to make a movie out of the show wasn’t all that successful and kind of left a bad taste in a lot of peopl es’ mouths since it was such a poor attempt that even watching the trailer was something that peopl e didn’t want to admit for a while. Sometimes the best thing you can do is remember the good times and think back to the original that made it something special. Lets hope they will never, never try to make a movie out of Infinite Jest. Jim Incandenza tried that once already, with singularly bad results.
ellauri079.html on line 124: VIDEO
ellauri079.html on line 128: VIDEO
ellauri079.html on line 137: Wampum is a traditional shell bead of the Eastern Woodlands tribes of Native Americans. It includes white shell beads hand fashioned from the North Atlantic channeled whelk shell and white and purpl e beads made from the quahog or Western North Atlantic hard-shelled clam. Before European contact, strings of wampum were used for storytelling, ceremonial gifts, and recording important treaties and historical events, such as the Two Row Wampum Treaty or The Hiawatha Belt. Wampum was also used by the northeastern Indian tribes as a means of exchange, strung together in lengths for convenience. The first Colonists adopted it as a currency in trading with them. Eventually, the Colonists appl ied their technologies to more efficiently produce wampum, which caused inflation and ultimately its obsolescence as currency.
ellauri079.html on line 161: Nyt on siis päästy filmin 'Loputon läppä' kvestin huipennuxeen, jossa tähtinä on Remy Martin (se pyörätuolijäbä), ja Hugh/Helen Steepl y (hirmu iso transu joka bylsii Orinia). Niiden suuhun Wallu panee syvälliset mietteensä. Ne on kuin jumala ja jeesus Miltonin Paradise Lostissa. Se menee näin:
ellauri079.html on line 201: Dionysios näyttää ikävästi pl agioineen filosofeja mainizematta lähteitä. Se on rumaa, ja epistä. Mut mitä väliä: Kaikista tähänastisista ja tulevista kirjoittajista, jotka väittävät tuntevansa ne asiat joita minä vakavassa mielessä tutkin ja esittävät ne joko minulta tai muilta kuulevinaan tai ize löytäminään, voin sanoa tämän verran: minun mielestäni he eivät voi ymmärtää asiasta yhtään mitään. Tää juttu on näät mystistä, sitä ei voikaan kirjoittaa, se täytyy vaan ize tajuta niinkuin mä. Ei riitä nimi, määritelmä, kuva eikä sanallinen tieto, pitää vaan välähdyxenomaisesti tajuta. Ja se ei onnistukaan joka iikalle, pitää olla lahjoja. Ja niitä pitää tuoda mulle tunnin alussa. Mun luennot on aika kalliita.
ellauri079.html on line 210: Häkki. Näitä on useita, kaikki vastustavat kaupallista tv-viihdettä ja tv-mainoxia. Valon lajeja. Synkät logiikat. Kai tennis käy kaikille? "Täällä ei ole häviäjiä". Virtausta laatikossa (Flux in the Box, ks tätä ). Nää on tennisaiheisia. Loputon läppä . Näitä on 5? versiota. Kaupallista viihdettä. Anulaarifuusio on ystävämme. Ditto voimistettu valo. Berkeleyn sairaanhoitajien liitto. Cambridgen kielioppiteoreetikkojen liitto. Eklottava Steven "Pinky" Pinker mainitaan. Leskimies . Kuolema Scarsdalessa . Ehkä homoilua. Hupia kera lampaiden. Immanentti valtakunta. Tuskan lajeja. Erilaisia pieniä liekkejä. Näissä on viittauxia aviolliseen uskottomuuteen, varmaan Wallun äitykän. Medusa vastaan odaliski. Vois olla Wallun äiti vs. tyttöystävä. Kone aaveessa . (p.o. Ghost in the Machine eikä toisinpäin.) Homo dupl ex. Tusinoittain John Waynejä. Painoton teeseremonia. Taivaan ja helvetin avioehtosopimus. Tässä mainitaan taas äiti Teresa. Kenenhän mielestä se oli upea? Läppä. Yleisö näyttelijänä. Hyvin ärsyttävä Wallusta. Yhdysvaltalaisten yritysten keskijohdon kyynelehtiviä edustajia. Keskeneräinen. Tää vois suoraan viitata James D. Wallacen tuotantoon (alla). Disney Leith tuuma tuumalta. Readymade-draama. Jälkimmäisiä taas puolitusinaa. Olix tää se Viihde vai? Mies joka alkoi epäillä olevansa lasia. Skizoilua. Amerikkalainen vuosisata tiilen kautta nähtynä. Muzehän on just tää kirjanen?! Onaniadi. Ei erityisen hauska. Maailmankaikkeus menettää malttinsa. Siipikarja siivillään. Moebius strippaa. Tästä tulee mieleen Klibanin Freud´s first slip . Hyvästi byrokraatille. Verisisko: kovaakin kovempi nunna. Väkivallalla herkuttelua. Tulkoon kevennys. Nimettömiäkin on aika liuta. Poissa on Troy. Siitä tuli violetti ex-kaupunki, saastetynnöri. Voittokuponki on poistettu. Wallun painostava muistelus narisevan sängyn purusta isän kaa. Äiti joka ei tykkää siivoamisesta imuroi. Kuuluisien diktaattorien vauvavalokuvia. Viittaus Eskaton-peliin kai. Seiso naurun takana seisovien miesten takana. Lisää rebublikaanista sosiaalitoimistovihaa. Ihan kuin ennen vanhaan. Painostavia isimuisteluxia. Terävä pikku roisto. Turtanoiden hyinen majesteettisuus. Hyvännäköisiä miehiä pienissä fixuissa huoneissa joiden jokainen sentti käytetään typerryttävän tehokkaasti. Oiskohan toi vika jotain homoilua pöpilässä. Alhaisen lämpötilan yhteiskuntaoppi. Poor Yorick. (Ainakin) 3 hurraahuutoa syylle ja seurauxelle. Antaa ymmärtää että Tavis bylsi Aprillia. Halu haluta. Jotain nekrofiliaa. Turvallinen veneily ei ole sattumaa. Antaa ymmärtää että Joellen naama jäi veneen potkuriin. Erittäin vähäinen vaikutus. Narkoleptinen aerobic-opettaja. Oiskohan se Wallu ize. Yöllä on sombrero päässä. Oidipaalista höpöä. Wallu oli takuulla oidipaalinen. Rikostoveri! ...koko tekotaiteellisen ja raivostuttavan epätasaisen uran typerin, inhottavin, tökeröin ja huonoiten editoitu tuote. Pääosissa ikääntynyt pederasti (James) ja tatuoitu katuprostituoitu (Joelle). Sano H niinkuin himokkuus. Jonkun Bressonin synnin enkelien coveri. Never höörd. Aineeton maa. Yawn. Oli suuri ihme että hän eli isässä häntä tuntematta. Taas painostavia isimuisteluxia. Kuolema ja sinkkutyttö. Joku kilometrin pituinen nimi muka jonkun Peter Weissin näytelmästä tehdylle filmille. James yökkii yleisön päälle tuoden mieleen paskanheiton Oulussa. Liian hauskaa. Niinpä niin. Tuo ei ollut enää hauskaa. Surullinen tapaus nimeltä minä. Pahoillaan joka paikassa. . Tähän se päättyi, tai oikeammin loputtomaan läppään nummero 5.
ellauri079.html on line 218: In this article, we contend that due to their size and emphasis upon addressing external social concerns, the corporate relationship between social enterprises, social awareness and action is more compl ex than whether or not these organisations engage in corporate social responsibility (CSR). This includes organisations that pl ace less emphasis on CSR as well as other organisations that may be very proficient in CSR initiatives, but are less successful in recording practices. In this context, we identify a number of internal CSR (...)
ellauri079.html on line 238: In this article, the ability of partnerships to generate goods that enhance the quality-of-life of socially and economically deprived urban communities is expl ored. Drawing on Rawl's study on social justice [Rawls, J.: 1971, A Theory of Justice (Harvard University Press, Cambridge)] and Sen's capabilities approach [Sen, A.: 1992, Inequality Re-Examined (Harvard University Press, Cambridge, MA); 1999, Development as Freedom (Oxford University Press, Oxford); 2009, The Idea of Justice (Ellen Lane, London)], we undertake an ethical evaluation of the effectiveness of different (...)
ellauri079.html on line 243: This book aims to recast the way we think about ethics by defending an alternative to more conventional approaches and illustrating its pl ausibility through detailed discussions of several important cases. The book is styled as an attack on “Plato’s Thesis”.
ellauri079.html on line 265: Good Lives and Meaningful Work. James D. Wallace - 2002 - Professional Ethics, a Multidiscipl inary Journal 10 (1):73-79. Kirja-arvostelu jonkun Mike Martinin kirjasta nimeltä Meaningful work .
ellauri079.html on line 267: 1. Introduction: Particularism And Pluralism. E pl uribus unum. James D. Wallace - 2018 - In Ethical Norms, Particular Cases. Cornell University Press. pp. 1-8.
ellauri079.html on line 277: In Quandaries and Virtues, Edmund Pincoffs maintains that we observe a multipl icity of moral norms. A common life in which we participate suppl ies a context in which many virtues pl ay diverse functional roles. He suggests, without developing the idea, that such a common life provides us with a structure for organizing and harmonizing the many moral norms we attempt to pursue. This essay expl ores that idea. Bodies of shared practical knowledge, such as medicine and scientific research, provide exampl es of empirically (...)
ellauri079.html on line 303: Surprisingly, I use as an exampl e of a free agent here a pingpong pl ayer. Presumably because my tennis-pl aying son has proved unsatisfactory. What I end up saying is distinguish agent causation from event causation. Futile squirming, it does not change anything.
ellauri079.html on line 316: Platon ihannerebubliikki ei näytä jenkeistäkään ideaalilta. Kas tässä mixi. Zydeemi muistuttaa hyvin öljyttyä masiinaa missä jokaisella on edeltämäärätty tehtävänsä ja ekolokeronsa (a good wife knows her pl ace); mutta sen konemainen luonne näyttää keskiverto uusliberaalista luotaantyöntävältä, kun ei poikkeamia kaavaan sallita. Jos innovaatiot on kielletty, ei jää tilaa luovalle tuholle eikä henkilökohtaiselle nousukkuudelle. Plaatto näyttää edellyttävän että henkilön tehtävän täyttäminen riittää onneen, tai ainakin niin se argumentoi Thrasymakhosta vastaan (352d–354a). Se sanoo että jokaisella esineellä, eläimellä ja henkilöllä on oma tehtävä (ergon). Jos se suorittaa tehtävänsä hyvin, sen käy hyvin: elukoille hyvin käyminen tarkoittaa hyvää elämää ja hyvä elämä onnellista elämää.
ellauri080.html on line 28: Luonteenvikoja play:none">Psykopatiaa
ellauri080.html on line 65: Hippocrates (?c.460-377 or 359 BC) (the "father of medicine") categorized peopl e into different temperaments (phlegmatic, humid, bilious, melancholic), each of which described a constellation of tendencies.
ellauri080.html on line 67: Mikäs se play/sanguine-word-history">sangviininen olikaan kreikaxi? Hematoidiko?
ellauri080.html on line 93: Kuumaa ja kylmää Chymos-mehua. Ozikon "Huumori" alla Pynchon Wiki luettelee seuraavat slapstick-pl äjäyxet:
ellauri080.html on line 95: "winejelly" incident (aka "Disgusting English Candy Drill"), 116; "show us your papers!" 442; Hopmann's and Kreuss' prank on Toiletship, 451; "Super Animals In My Crack" 466; orgy on Anubis, 467; Frau Gnahb's criticisms, 497; Springer's Sodium Amytal-induced outbursts, 512, 514 and 746; "How I Came to Love the Peopl e" 547; pinball machines run amuck, 583-84; Miss Muller-Hochleben, 633; "I say. . ." 634; "helicopter!" 683; "Ass Backwards" 683; "It's an old saying among my peopl e" 709; Kazoo Quartet, 711-12; discharge dumpl ings, u.s.w., 715; bad pun, 746
ellauri080.html on line 110: Jännää täs on miten nää luonnehdinnat aaltoilee poliittisten virtausten mukana. Tämmöset sapl uunat oli muotia äärioikeistolaisella 50-luvulla, pois muodista vasemmistolaisilla 60-70-luvuilla, ja trendas taas 80/90-luvulla. Apinoiden lokerointi syntyperällä on oikeistomeemejä, se on sitä oma vika pikku sika ajattelua. Tää pitäs miettiä uudestaan ottaen paremmin huomioon, mitkä kombinaatiot on hyviä ja pahoja mihinkin ja kenenkin mielestä. Täs on vielä ihan liikaa horoskoopin makua. Liikaa pelkkää tendentiöösiä sanahelinää. Niin sanoo muutkin luonneanalyysin kriitikot. Parempi lukea vaan Teofrastosta.
ellauri080.html on line 123: However, many researchers felt that Cattell's theory was too compl icated and Eysenck's was too limited in scope. As a result, the five-factor theory emerged to describe the essential traits that serve as the building blocks of personality. 5 is a nice number, it happens to be the number of fingers in your right (or left, if you are sinistral) hand (if you are a normal person, that is).
ellauri080.html on line 135: This trait features characteristics such as imagination and insight. Peopl e who are high in this trait also tend to have a broad range of interests. They are curious about the world and other peopl e and eager to learn new things and enjoy new experiences.
ellauri080.html on line 139: Peopl e who are high in this trait tend to be more adventurous and creative . Peopl e low in this trait are often much more traditional and may struggle with abstract thinking.
ellauri080.html on line 146: ple-2795488" data-component="link" data-source="inlineLink" data-type="internalLink" data-ordinal="1">Very creative
ellauri080.html on line 166: Standard features of this dimension include high levels of thoughtfulness, good impulse control, and goal-directed behaviors.
Highly conscientious peo
pl e tend to be organized and mindful of details. They
pl an ahead, think about how their behavior affects others, and are mindful of deadlines.
ellauri080.html on line 186:
Fails to compl ete necessary or assigned tasks
ellauri080.html on line 193: Extraversion (or extroversion) is characterized by excitability, sociability, talkativeness, assertiveness, and high amounts of emotional expressiveness.
Peo
pl e who are
high in extraversion are outgoing and tend to gain energy in social situations. Being around other peo
pl e helps them feel energized and excited.
ellauri080.html on line 197: Peo
pl e who are
low in extraversion (or introverted) tend to be more reserved and have less energy to expend in social settings. Social events can feel draining and introverts often require a period of solitude and quiet in order to "recharge."
ellauri080.html on line 206:
Enjoys meeting new peopl e
ellauri080.html on line 209:
Feels energized when around other peopl e
ellauri080.html on line 238: This personality dimension includes attributes such as trust,
altruism , kindness, affection, and other
prosocial behaviors .
Peo
pl e who are high in agreeableness tend to be more cooperative while those low in this trait tend to be more competitive and sometimes even manipulative.
ellauri080.html on line 245:
Has a great deal of interest in other peopl e
ellauri080.html on line 247:
Feels empathy and concern for other peopl e
ellauri080.html on line 248:
Enjoys helping and contributing to the happiness of other peopl e
ellauri080.html on line 256:
Doesn't care about how other peopl e feel
ellauri080.html on line 257:
Has little interest in other peopl e's problems
ellauri080.html on line 295: McCrae and his colleagues have also found that the big five traits are also remarkably universal. One study that looked at peo
pl e from more than 50 different cultures found that the five dimensions could be accurately used to describe personality.
ellauri080.html on line 299: Based on this research, many psychologists now believe that the five personality dimensions are not only universal; they also have biological origins. Psychologist David Buss has proposed that an evolutionary ex
pl anation for these five core personality traits, suggesting that these personality traits represent the most important qualities that shape our social landscape.
ellauri080.html on line 304: Research suggests that both biological and environmental influences
pl ay a role in shaping our personalities. Twin studies suggest that both
nature and nurture pl ay a role in the development of each of the five personality factors.
ellauri080.html on line 312: Longitudinal studies also suggest that these big five personality traits tend to be relatively stable over the course of adulthood. One study of working-age adults found that personality tended to be stable over a four-year period and dis
pl ayed little change as a result of adverse life events.
ellauri080.html on line 316: Studies have shown that maturation may have an impact on the five traits. As peo
pl e age, they tend to become less extraverted, less neurotic, and less open to the experience. Agreeableness and conscientiousness, on the other hand, tend to increase as peo
pl e grow older.
ellauri080.html on line 321: Always remember that behavior involves an interaction between a person's underlying personality and situational variables. The situation that a person finds himself or herself
pl ays a major role in how the person reacts. However, in most cases, peo
pl e offer responses that are consistent with their underlying personality traits.
ellauri080.html on line 325: These dimensions represent broad areas of personality. Research has demonstrated that these groupings of characteristics tend to occur together in many peo
pl e. For exam
pl e, individuals who are sociable tend to be talkative. However, these traits do not always occur together.
Personality is com
pl ex and varied and each person may dis
pl ay behaviors across several of these dimensions.
ellauri080.html on line 356: The TCI is based on a psychobiological model that attempts to ex
pl ain the underlying causes of individual differences in personality traits.
ellauri080.html on line 361: Cloninger, C. R. (2013). What makes peo
pl e healthy, happy, and fulfilled in the face of current world challenges? Mens Sana Monographs, 11, 16–24. doi: 10.4103/0973-1229.109288
ellauri080.html on line 365: Self-directedness can be seen as the executive branch of a person’s system of mental self-government. Peo
pl e who are self-directed recognize that their attitudes, behaviors, and problems reflect their own choices. They tend to accept responsibility for their attitudes and behavior and they impress others as reliable and trustworthy persons. As a result, a person’s Self-directedness is an important indicator of reality testing, maturity, and vulnerability to mood disturbance....
ellauri080.html on line 375: If this describes you as well as it described me, you’ve come to the right
pl ace! In this piece, we will define self-transcendence, look at its components and characteristics, think of some exam
pl es, and ex
pl ore how it can be achieved.
ellauri080.html on line 385:
Cooperativeness is a personality trait concerning the degree to which a person is generally agreeable in their relations with other peo
pl e as opposed to aggressively self-centred and hostile. It is one of the "character" dimensions in Cloninger's Temperament and Character Inventory. Cloninger described it as relating to individual differences in how much peo
pl e identify with and accept others. Cloninger's research found that low cooperativeness is associated with all categories of personality disorder. Cooperativeness is conceptually similar to and strongly correlated with agreeableness in the five factor model of personality.
ellauri080.html on line 400:
Intensity of reaction : intense children will have very powerful reactions to things. For instance, if they want to wear their favorite pur
pl e shirt and it’s in the washer, they may have an intense outburst. Children with low intensity will react very mildly to negative and positive situations. It may be difficult to recognize how a low intensity child is feeling.
ellauri080.html on line 402:
Adaptability : Highly adaptable peo
pl e can easily switch from one activity or location to another, without any problems. Those who are less adaptable need to take time to feel comfortable with change or new situations.
ellauri080.html on line 404:
Approach/withdrawal : brave ex
pl orer or shy chicken? Approaching children are excited and willing to ex
pl ore new things, peo
pl e and situations. They may run to investigate a new
pl ayground without hesitation and oftentimes will take very little time to adjust to new situations.
ellauri080.html on line 405: Withdrawing children are slow to warm up. They need extra time to adjust to new situations and may hang back before they ex
pl ore or join in. They may hesitate at a new social situation instead of joining in right away.
ellauri080.html on line 407:
Persistence refers to how long you are able and willing to stick to a task, even when it is challenging. Some individuals are willing to keep working at something, even when they run into roadblocks along the way. Other peo
pl e may be more willing to drop a task that is difficult and move on to something else. They may become very frustrated or ask for an adult to do it for them.
ellauri080.html on line 411: Highly distractible children will quickly shift their attention from one thing to another. They may not be able to focus on a conversation over dinner if they see a dog outside the kitchen window. They may be very attuned to details and have a hard time focusing in
pl aces and spaces that are busy and loud. Children with low distractibility find it easy to get really focused on a task. They get absorbed in a book even though there’s a noisy gathering of peo
pl e in the same room. These children can block out many distractions and really focus their attention on what they are working on.
ellauri080.html on line 413:
Mood : Some children naturally have a happier mood, and other children may have a more serious mood. Mood refers to the overall tone of a person’s feelings, interactions and behaviors. Some peo
pl e are dispositioned to have a happier overall mood, and they generally feel good about things. Others may have more of a negative mood. They may be referred to as more un
pl easant, as they may not react in a strong, positive way with the world around them. Children who have a more naturally negative mood may appear to be more subdued than happy. They may have a demeanor that is more calm and may appear gloomy, sad or negative. They may not show their positive feelings externally, but may still feel positive things. I guess.
ellauri080.html on line 427: The material I will use to justify my claims comes from three time-honored traditions: sacred geometry as practiced by the ancient Egyptians, the inner structure of the I Ching, and the house arrangement of astrology. All these disci
pl ines attempt to give meaningful order to what may appear at times to be a chaotic human existence, as is Jung’s typology.
ellauri080.html on line 431: It seems to be a natural tendency of human nature to want to categorize the infinite variety of phenomenological reality into neat, distinct, and useful components. We have types and varieties from every area of human experience. There is some security when confronted by a brand new situation to be able to instantly ascribe this novelty to a pre-arranged mental coding system. Once we have categories we can describe differences and similarities – we can form hypotheses of relationship. This can be both useful and destructive, as unnecessary stereotyping leads to a relativizing of uniqueness. Jung walks this thin line by sim
pl y stating, “In my practical medical work with nervous patients I have long been struck be the fact that besides the many individual differences in human psychology there are also typical differences.”
ellauri080.html on line 435: He was well aware of the difficulty of presenting a general description of types and its inability to draw an absolutely correct picture. Still, his wealth of empirical evidence led him to deduce as ‘factual’ the existence of distinct types. This deduction was made many times before him and is a sim
pl e reflection of the nature of reality (the reality of Nature).
ellauri080.html on line 437: In Jungian typology, the original ‘unity’ of human consciousness is first divided into two poles of attitude: extraversion and introversion. These represent two fundamentally distinct yet com
pl ementary relationships between inner and outer reality. Extraversion is characterized bya flow of energy and interest from the subject to the object, from the inner to the outer. Identification with the outer gives meaning to the inner. Introversion is com
pl etely the opposite. It is characterized by a flow of energy and interest from the object to the subject, from the outer to the inner.
ellauri080.html on line 441: The introvert will give ultimate significance to subjective, inner experience and will tend to assign importance to what is happening externally only as it related to this inner experience, or only if it will lead to personal growth. The extravert, contrarily, will give ultimate significance to what is happening externally in the objective, outer world and will assign very little importance or com
pl etely disregard inner experience, unless it could lead to outer growth. These are obviously two diametrically opposed yet com
pl ementary approaches to life, reminiscent of the oriental Yin (introversion) and Yang (extraversion).
ellauri080.html on line 453: Kirjainlyhenteistä voi suunnilleen arvata mistä tässä on kymysys: E/I on extra/introvertti, N/S on varmaan intuition/sensation, T/F thinking/feeling ja P/J on varmaan perception/judgment. Eli tollanen neljän binäärimuuttujan taulukointi. Ensinäkemältä jo heti vaikuttaa et tässon ladattu vähän liian paljon tollasten aivokuorifunktioiden niskoille, kyllä matelijanaivotkin pitäis ottaa mukaan yhtälöön. Tai ehkä liskoaivot tule mukaan tolla T/F axelilla. Kai sit aina toinen niistä on introverttiä ja toinen extroverttiä, arvatenkin noi ekat on intro ja tokat kirjaimet on extro. El super-intro on INTP ja super-extro on ESFJ. Abstract minded system analysts vastaan concerned and supportive peo
pl e persons. Joo mä nään mihin tässä ollaan menossa. Voi helvetti. Vanhaa patriarkaalista toxista sovinistipaskaa isoilla kirjaimilla kirjoitettuna.
ellauri080.html on line 461: ENFP Quirky and verbally fluid peo
pl e persons.
ellauri080.html on line 464: INFJ Visionaries oriented toward contem
pl ation.
ellauri080.html on line 467: ESFJ Concerned and supportive peo
pl e persons.
ellauri080.html on line 471: ESFP Free-spirited and fun-loving peo
pl e persons.
ellauri080.html on line 490: “…amidst all the variety and caprice of taste, there are certain general princi
pl es of approbation or blame, whose influence a careful eye may trace in all operations of the mind.” — David Hume (ENTP). Hume oli siis quirky and verbally fluid peo
pl e person. No jaa, myssypäinen poikames. Yhtä saamattomia olivat kumpikin.
ellauri080.html on line 492: This relates directly to CelebrityTypes’ observation of “NTP Knowing and NTJ Willing”, though my proposition is that this in fact ap
pl ies across all types in the form of these judging axes, albeit with varying degrees of appearance. I believe that in the sense above, the FE/TI axis is more naturally wired to seek abstract knowledge, while TE/FI is more naturally wired to make concrete its visionary will.
ellauri080.html on line 494: Hence, the TE/FI attitude, represented by Nietzsche, assumes that peo
pl e do things because they want to, they desire to, they have a passionate, sentimental drive to: desires and feelings are the metaphysical bottom-line, for which structure serves only as a vehicle. Meanwhile, the FE/TI attitude represented by Hume assumes that peo
pl e do things because that is what makes sense to them: because that is the decision-making paradigm which they are working off of, and all feelings, motivations, and desires result from the way a person chooses to logically view the world, whether they realize it or not. Feelings and motivations are merely the skin of logically ascertainable princi
pl es upon which peo
pl e operate.
ellauri080.html on line 498: These two views of the world are, of course, mutually inimical — they inevitably chase each other’s tails. Nietzsche says to Hume: ‘he stole that bread because he wanted to feed his family,’ to which Hume re
pl ies, ‘yes, that is true: but why did he want to feed his family? Because he is adhering to a familial princi
pl e,’ to which Nietzsche re
pl ies, ‘I suppose you could put it that way, but why is he operating according to that princi
pl e? It’s because he wants to, because he loves his family,’ to which Hume re
pl ies, ‘yes, but why does he love his family? It’s because that is his logical worldview…’ And so on.
ellauri080.html on line 512: These two attitudes can be summed up as ‘conjecturing’ and ‘examining’ respectively. The one axis seeks to discover, envision or predict the potential course (NI)
pl otted by their various raw experiences of things (SE); obviously the image I am summoning here is that of a scatter
pl ot and line of best fit, though one could also summon the image of a researcher recording their observations and then forming overarching conclusions abstracted from that data.
ellauri080.html on line 514: On the NI side, a good exam
pl e would be Karl Marx, who spent hours upon hours researching and observing social and economic conditions in society, from which data he developed his comprehensive theories of capital and dialectical materialism. On the SE side, a good exam
pl e is Dale Carnegie, who, as CelebrityTypes pointed out in one of their function axes articles, is one of many SE types who concretize their wealth of experiences into practical wisdom, such as ‘How to Win Friends and Influence Peo
pl e’.
ellauri080.html on line 518: The other axis seeks to discover, cognate, or comprehend the true nature of things (SI) by compositing the uniting elements between various creative perspectives on things (NE); the image I like to use here is of a diagram showing multi
pl e perspectives of a 3-D object in 2-D space, where each perspective conceals something in order to reveal something else.
ellauri080.html on line 520: A good exam
pl e of this mentality can be found in the theories of Michel Foucault, who himself describes society as a series of power structure grids you can lay on top of the truth in order to reveal some things but conceal others, and our goal essentially should be to experiment with various power grids to discover the true limits or bounds of how human society can successfully be structured. Another exam
pl e could be Martin Heidegger’s discussion of Being or existence, and how many different perspectives are required to observe it and get a full picture, because of our extremely subjective position in relation to the nature of our own existence, not to mention existence within the ever shifting realm of time.
ellauri080.html on line 526: A dominant NI type, for instance, is constantly conjecturing from whatever data they have: it’s what they do, and that’s why these types will often feel like they have a lot to say on topics regardless of their expertise, because they can still conjecture an intriguing point of view from what little data they have; of course, depending on their skill, luck, and their sam
pl e size, it is not uncommon for their ‘lines of best fit’, as it were, to be off by some degree. In fact, Ni types are often used to this and, at least in my experience, can sometimes conjecture about how accurate their own conjectures are likely to be. Se conjecture like this too, believe it or not, just not as consistently, but it is part of what can lend that peculiar air of surety or confidence to the ESTP’s speech, or the driven spontaneity of the ESFP’s decisions. These types feel that they see something before them in glorious clarity and sharpness. How long that vision will last varies.
ellauri080.html on line 528: Meanwhile, the NE/SI axis is not so trusting of direct experience, which is hardly a mystery, because their perception of reality is introverted, meaning they aren’t interested in direct and photographic reality, but in the ideal versions of experiences abstracted from reality (e.g. Socrates’ search for the overarching ‘idea’ of everyday things like dogs, beds, piety, etc., as opposed to individual instances of these things). This is why, as CelebrityTypes also points out, “The person will also be more careful and meticulous (SI) because there is an unconscious striving to contribute one’s observations to building a system which is valid not just in the here and now, but which is perceived to be true in general: To generate the type of knowledge that could conceivably end up in a future textbook on the subject.” The axis makes use of Ne’s multifaceted nature to accom
pl ish this.
ellauri080.html on line 530: This helps illuminate a number of characteristics of SI and NE individually: dominant SI types focus their energy on the apprehension and upholding of the Truth as it is carefully and cautiously composited and systematically tested for weaknesses; hence, their stereotypically thorough, cautious, and reserved nature, and why they are not so sure in idea-based conversation as Ni types: because of just that — they aren’t sure. Meanwhile, dominant NE types, focusing their energy on the ex
pl oration and experimentation from various angles, have the same presence of doubt, which is why NE types so often eschew dogma and may be perceived as intellectually ‘flakey’ or ‘capricious’ because they never truly commit to anything: it’s all experimentation and ex
pl oration, forming a composite Truth, though their trouble is they never want to stop. The SI’s trouble, on the other hand, is that they don’t want to start.
ellauri080.html on line 532: Concerning John Maynard Keynes, an INTJ, it was said: “[He spoke] on a great range of topics, on some of which he was thoroughly an expert, but on others [he had] derived his views from the few pages of a book at which he had happened to glance. The air of authority was the same in both cases.” Meanwhile, Bertrand Russell famously said that “The whole problem with the world is that fools and fanatics are always so certain of themselves, and wiser peo
pl e so full of doubts.” Coincidentally, history records a number of ENTPs and INTJs very much disliking each other.
ellauri080.html on line 535: Bertrand Russell named Keynes one of the most intelligent peo
pl e he had ever known, commenting:
ellauri080.html on line 542: This axis is also apparent in my own videos: you’ll notice there are quite a few of them, partly because I keep on redoing the same topics whenever I feel I’ve hit on a new perspective that I then can’t help but ex
pl ain as though it were my new ‘doctrine’ because it suddenly seems so much more clear and beautiful and compelling than any previous perspectives, and I just want to get that pure idea out. Literally, after I do a video on a compelling subject, if I did it well, I’ll feel like I’ve emptied myself out, and I’ll very easily forget what it was that I just ex
pl ained in that video. The idea dulls, I start finding some problems with it, and over time I mull it around with other material and then become bedazzled by the next rich synthesis.
ellauri080.html on line 544: Tää häiskä ize taitaa olla ENFP Quirky and verbally fluid peo
pl e person.
ellauri080.html on line 554: Suicide in ASD is largely understudied. Although suicide is common in clinical sam
pl es, we have little knowledge of suicide in persons with ASD in the general population. Comorbidity, particularly with depression and other affective disorders or schizoid disorders and psychotic symptoms, is often reported, so it is difficult to determine if suicidality is associated with ASD or the comorbid disorder. Clinical sam
pl es suggest that suicide occurs more frequently in high functioning autism.
ellauri080.html on line 571: Zebrafish are better company than autistic peo
pl e.
ellauri080.html on line 575: Gilligan's Island is an American sitcom. It aired for three seasons on the CBS network from September 26, 1964, to April 17, 1967. The series followed the comic adventures of seven castaways as they attempted to survive on an island on which they had been shipwrecked. Most episodes revolve around the dissimilar castaways' conflicts and their unsuccessful attempts, for whose failure Gilligan was frequently responsible, to escape their
pl ight.
ellauri080.html on line 599: The two-man crew of the charter boat SS Minnow and five passengers on a "three-hour tour" from Honolulu run into a typhoon and are shipwrecked on an uncharted island somewhere in the Pacific Ocean. Their efforts to be rescued are typically thwarted by the inadvertent conduct of the ha
pl ess first mate, Gilligan. In 1997, show creator Sherwood Schwartz ex
pl ained that the underlying concept is still "the most important idea in the world today". That is, peo
pl e with extremely different characters and backgrounds being in a situation where they need to learn how to get along and cooperate with each other as a matter of survival.
ellauri080.html on line 605: The shipwrecked castaways desperately want to leave the remote island, and various opportunities frequently present themselves, but always fail, usually due to some bumbling error committed by Gilligan. Sometimes this would result in Gilligan saving the others from some unforeseen flaw in their
pl an.
ellauri080.html on line 607: Most episodes of Gilligan's Island used variations on five recurring basic
pl ots:
ellauri080.html on line 609: Life on the island. A running gag is the castaways' ability to fashion a vast array of useful objects from bamboo, gourds, vines and other local materials. Some are sim
pl e everyday things, such as eating and cooking utensils, while others (such as a remarkably efficient lie detector apparatus) are stretches of the imagination. Russell Johnson noted in his autobiography that the production crew enjoyed the challenge of building these props. These bamboo items include framed huts with thatched grass sides and roofs, along with bamboo closets strong enough to withstand hurricane-force winds and rain, the communal dining table and chairs, pipes for Gilligan's hot water, a stethoscope, and a pedal-powered car.
ellauri080.html on line 611: Visitors to the uncharted island. Another challenge to a viewer's suspension of disbelief is the remarkable frequency with which the remote island is visited by an assortment of peo
pl e who repeatedly fail to assist the castaways in leaving the island.
ellauri080.html on line 617: The appearance or arrival of strange objects to the island, such as a World War II naval mine, an old silent motion picture camera and costumes, a crate of radioactive vegetable seeds,
pl astic ex
pl osives, a robot, a live lion, a jet pack, or a "Mars Rover" that the scientists back in the United States think is sending them pictures of Mars.
ellauri080.html on line 628: Rikkaat hihittävät hienoissa taloissaan valvontakameroiden takana ja järjestävät puutarhajuhlia. Köyhät vilistävät kuin torakat keittiöstä kun valot sytytetään, ja haisevat pahalta. Asuvat tulvaveden ja paskan täyttämissä kellareissa, eivät ylitä näkymätöntä rajaa. Ikävintä on, että tää ei edes ole liioittelua. Korealainen Parasiitit ja japanilainen Sho
pl ifters ei ole liioittelua. Eikä taiwanilainen A Son. Tämmöstä tää nyt taas on. Marxilla ja Engelsillä olis töitä.
ellauri080.html on line 657: Anomalistinen vuosi kestää noin 365,2596 vuorokautta. Se on aika Maan perihelistä seuraavaan, ja on hiukan sideeristä vuotta pidempi, koska periheli kiertyy muiden
pl aneettojen aiheuttamien häiriöiden vuoksi.
ellauri080.html on line 675:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f3/DickCavettApr10.jpg/250px-DickCavettApr10.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri080.html on line 691: “Drinking to intoxication is a social activity that is more likely to occur in a group,” said first author Duneesha De Alwis, PhD, a postdoctoral fellow in the Department of Psychiatry. “Peo
pl e with autistic traits can be socially withdrawn, so drinking with peers is less likely. But if they do start drinking, even alone, they tend to repeat that behavior, which puts them at increased risk for alcohol dependence.”
ellauri080.html on line 693: “There seems to be a strong genetic overlap between ADHD and autism,” De Alwis said. “And it’s very common for peo
pl e with ADHD to have autistic traits. These individuals may not have an autism spectrum disorder, but they typically score high on measurements of autistic traits.”
ellauri080.html on line 694: The study revealed that peo
pl e with more ADHD symptoms or autistic traits were more likely to abuse alcohol. Furthermore, they were also more likely to smoke cigarettes and use marijuana.
ellauri080.html on line 696: “It could be that peo
pl e with just a few autistic traits have an increased risk of substance-abuse problems, while those with more traits are somehow protected,” Agrawal concluded. “For this study, we clumped all of these symptoms together. In future research, we want to look at how individual traits-like repetitive behaviors or being withdrawn socially-may influence risk. It could be that some traits related to autism are protective, while others elevate the risk for alcohol and substance-abuse problems.”
ellauri080.html on line 706:
ploads/chorus_image/image/60505993/GettyImages_51093429.0.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri080.html on line 722:
VIDEO
ellauri080.html on line 723:
VIDEO
ellauri080.html on line 760: Gandhi was drawn to a sim
pl e life, and he founded an ashram (model community) based on traditional ways of living.
ellauri080.html on line 763: In 1931, Gandhi was given an audience with King George V. An apocryphal account says Mahatma Gandhi was asked “what he thought of Western civilization?” he re
pl ied that “he thought it might be a good idea."
ellauri080.html on line 777: But Gandhi was also a puritan and a misogynist who helped ensure that India remains one of the most sexually repressed nations on earth – and, by and large, a dreadful
pl ace to be born female.
ellauri080.html on line 779: Gandhi despised his own sexual desires, and despised sex in any context except for procreation. He preached that the failure to control carnal urges led to com
pl aints including constipation. He believed that sex was bad for the health of an individual, and that sexual freedom would lead Indians to failure as a peo
pl e. He sought to consign his nation to what Martin Luther called "the hell of celibacy". He took his own celibacy vow unilaterally, without consulting his wife.
ellauri080.html on line 789: Gandhi cemented, for another generation, the attitude that women were sim
pl y creatures that could bring either pride or shame to the men who owned them. Again, the legacy lingers. India today, according to the World Economic Forum, finds itself towards the very bottom of the gender equality index. Indian social campaigners battle heroically against such patriarchy. They battle dowry deaths. They battle the honour killings of teenage lovers. They battle Aids. They battle female foeticide and the abandonment of new-born girls.
ellauri080.html on line 791: In the words of the Indian writer Khushwant Singh, "nine-tenths of the violence and unhappiness in this country derives from sexual repression". Gandhi isn't singularly to blame for India's dee
pl y problematic attitudes to sex and female sexuality. But he fought, and succeeded, to ensure the country would never experience sexual freedom while his legend persevered. Gandhi's genius was to realise the great power of non-violent political revolution. But the violence of his thoughts towards women has contributed to countless honour killings and immeasurable suffering.
ellauri080.html on line 793: Gandhi
pl aced great value on self-sufficiency. As a lawyer he learnt to wash his own clothes, and later he also learnt to cut his own hair. Even though he was initially ridiculed for his messy hairstyle. Okay he said and shaved his head. Made him look the jailbird he was.
ellauri080.html on line 808: Gandhi asked him on a princi
pl e of non-violence “If a snake is about to bite me, should I allow myself to be bitten or should I kill it?” His mentor Rajchandbhai wrote back, “If the person lacks the development of a noble character, one may advise him to kill the snake, but we should wish that neither you nor I will even dream of being such a person.”
ellauri080.html on line 830: Auttakaa entistä gladiaattoria joka on ihan poikki, sanoi Asterixissa jalaton tyyppi joka istui pikkuisessa pyörin varustetussa laatikossa. Sellainen on toi Wallun Marathe. Yxijalkainen merirosvo joka pitää transun Hugh "Helen" Stee
pl yn kanssa maratonimoraalifilosofista istuntoa navajoluutnantti Leghornin ja Jim Cheen maisemissa kirjan mainostauoilla. (Arizonan Tempessä asui Wallun vanhemmat eläkepäivinä.) Kulinnsseina joku Sierra Madre josta tulee mieleen kenraali Xavier ja San Morealin tykit. Tyypit voi hyvin askarrella leegoista, yhtä palikoita. Ihankuin 4-kanavalla, mainoxia tulee koko ajan enemmän leffan loppupuolella.
ellauri080.html on line 834: Kukahan se oli? Jenkkimoraalin taustaoletus on kapitalismin kasvuräjähdys, win-win näät perustuu sellaiseen. Nollasummapeliin se ei sovi. Jos asia ei ratkea tarjouskilpailulla, se on politiikkaa sanoo paskiaiset. Vitun tarjouskilpailut. Jopa Milton Friedmanin ja sen Chicagon roistoko
pl an oma peliteoria todistaa että sellaisissa voittaa rikas köyhät 6-0, koska sillä on varaa hävitä tarjouskilpailussa enemmän. Nälkäinen karvakäsi Eesau häviää koko taivaosansa ja luihu Jakob hähättelee koko matkan pankkiin.
ellauri080.html on line 836: Mut no tarkkaan ottaen, sanoo paxu tekotissinen karvajalkainen ja peruukkipäinen transu Stee
pl y, ei jenkkimoraali ookkaan ihan vaan me first, siinä on myös tämmönen us first elementti. Riippumatta mitä tahdot izexesi, sun on tahdottava enstex tän vapaan maan etua, jossa tätä oman edun tavoittelua voi sit harjoittaa saamatta ize turpiinsa.
ellauri080.html on line 943: Baloo on rakastettava karhu joka yrittää adoptoida kädellisen pojan Intian viidakossa. Baloo ottaa Konnan sisään kuin oman poikansa ja opettaa sen elämään helppoa elämää viidakossa. Kun tiikeri Shere Khan yrittää tappaa Konnan, Baloo ja hänen ystävänsä työskentelevät yhdessä kehittääxeen
pl äänin Konnan palauttamisexi mies-kylään. Baloo on vastahakoinen, mutta hän lopulta kuuntelee ystäviään ja on samaa mieltä että paras optio Konnalle on palata mies-kylään.
ellauri082.html on line 28:
FLOW IN A BLOW play:none">Juonipaljastuxia
ellauri082.html on line 54: When David Foster Wallace committed suicide in 2008, it was clear he had been profoundly depressed. But the first major biography of the writer, D.T. Max’s Every Love Story Is a Ghost Story, out on August 30th, reveals an even more troubled mind than anyone realized. From the time he was in college, the brilliant author of Infinite Jest was in and out of institutions as he struggled with depression and addictions to alcohol and marijuana. But the book is also full of all kinds of other strange surprises, painting the most com
pl ete, and warmest, portrait of Wallace yet.
ellauri082.html on line 58: Wallace described himself as “near great” at his favorite sport, but in reality he was just the 11th-best teenage
pl ayer in central Illinois – not exactly a tennis hotbed. Still, he was good enough to beat Jay McInerney when they were both at the artist colony Yaddo.
ellauri082.html on line 60:
He pl otted murder on Mary Karr's hubby.
ellauri082.html on line 62: Obsessed with the writer Mary Karr, Wallace
pl anned to shoot her husband with a gun he tried to buy from a guy he met in recovery. She found out about the scheme, but believed him when he blamed it on his buddy. Wallace and Karr eventually became a cou
pl e, but Wallace stalked her kid in an ugly manner after she chucked him.
ellauri082.html on line 70: Wallace was so embarrassed by his tendency to sweat that he carried a tennis racket in high school, hoping peo
pl e would think he had just left the court. He was also serious about dental hygiene, keeping a toothbrush in his sock for emergencies.
ellauri082.html on line 74: After being rejected by the Prozac Nation author, Wallace wrote the 1998 story “The Depressed Person,” basing the title character – the most un
pl easant person on Earth – on her. Now who is the un
pl easant one of the two? Another Philip Roth.
ellauri082.html on line 85: Certain persons sim
pl y will not like you no matter what you do. Well, I'm good with that. I don't like you either. You do not have to like a person in order to learn from him/her/it.
ellauri082.html on line 89: You will become way less concerned with what other peo
pl e think of you when you realize how seldom they do.
ellauri082.html on line 93: Some peo
pl e’s moms never taught them to cover up or turn away when they sneeze. Different peo
pl e have radically different ideas of basic personal hygiene.
ellauri082.html on line 95: Other peo
pl e can often see things about you that you yourself cannot see, even if those peo
pl e are stupid. Because you are stupid too.
ellauri082.html on line 97: Perversely, it is often more fun to want something than to have it. It seems fun to many peo
pl e to be perverse.
ellauri082.html on line 105: Despite his flaws, DFW’s death is still a great tragedy, not because peo
pl e are without their god of post-post-post-postmodernism, but because his redemptive and humanistic work is now decidedly finite. Well here sure was a humanist as far as technology is concerned. His work could have beeen made infinite by adding to the end: Poles are stupid,
pl ease turn over.
ellauri082.html on line 112: What Happens at the End of Infinite Jest? (or, the Infinite Jest ending ex
pl ained)
ellauri082.html on line 131: JOI also created DMZ as part of an attempt to undo the effects of Hal’s eating mold as a child (recall: DMZ is a mold that grows on a mold). He left it along with the Entertainment (recall: ETA kids find JOI’s personal effects (670: “a bulky old doorless microwave…a load of old TP cartridges…mostly unlabelled”); the tapes and the DMZ are delivered together to the FLQ) which is about this goal (it stars a woman named Madame Psychosis (a street name for DMZ; another is 1st Av.) ex
pl aining that the thing that killed you in your last life will give birth to you in the next). The DMZ and the Entertainment were meant to go together for Hal. Now that the Entertainment has escaped, he needs to get Hal the DMZ.
ellauri082.html on line 133: Hal never leaves leaves his toothbrush unattended (870), but that’s no problem for a wraith. He
pl aces the DMZ on Hal’s brush and Hal brushes his teeth (860) and immediately begins experiencing symptoms: Ortho thinks Hal’s crying when Hal thinks he’s speaking in a neutral tone (862).
ellauri082.html on line 135: Hal’s symptoms indeed begin to reverse: he is now unable to properly communicate feelings (peo
pl e see him as either laughing hysterically or terribly sad) but beginning to actually feel (like Gately, he spends a lot of time lying on the floor thinking about the past — the hero of nonaction from his essay (142)). While before, everyone could hear him except JOI; now only JOI can hear him (since, as with Gately, he can hear Hal’s thoughts).
ellauri082.html on line 137: By the time of the match, his symptoms are so bad he’s taken by ambulance to the hospital (16: “the only other emergency room I have ever been in [was] almost exactly one year back”), safely escaping the A.F.R.’s assault. Like fellow student Otis P. Lord, he gets the bed next to Gately. Joelle (who is at the hospital for a meeting) visits Gately on her way out and recognizes Hal. She tells them both about the hunt for the lethal Entertainment and the resulting Continental Emergency and they all go to dig up JOI’s grave. They persuade John Wayne, a spy for the A.F.R., to become a double agent and help sneak them into JOI’s Quebec burial site. Wayne presumably tells the A.F.R. he is actually a tri
pl e agent — that he will steal the tape as soon as Hal digs it up. But, as with Marathe, his loyalties are ultimately even-numbered (n40). The A.F.R. finds out and brutally murders him, which is why he can’t win the WhataBurger (16f).
ellauri082.html on line 143: It’s too late because someone got there first and took the anti-Entertainment cartridge (126) embedded in JOI’s head (31). Whoever took it is presumably the person who’s made and mailed the extant copies. It couldn’t be the A.F.R. or O.U.S. or they wouldn’t still be searching for it. It probably wasn’t the F.L.Q. because they didn’t know how to read master cartridges—they just thought they were blank tapes in their dis
pl ays were blank. (483n205) It couldn’t be Avril acting alone; she has problems but she’s not that kind of cold-blooded killer. It had to have been Orin.1
ellauri082.html on line 145: Orin (who never attended his father’s funeral) went to the gravesite and dug up his father, releasing the wraith in the process. (244: “After a burial, rural Papineau-region Québecers purportedly drill a small hole down from ground level all the way down through the lid of the coffin, to let out the soul, if it wants out.”) Orin, who is such a partisan of his father that he feels the need to repeatedly ruin the lives of peo
pl e like his mother, has been mailing the tapes to his father’s enemies in revenge: disapproving film critics in Berkeley and the medical attaché (whose affair with his mother drove Himself especially wild) in Boston. It’s possible he’s being influenced by the wraith in these actions.
ellauri082.html on line 147: After the A.F.R. releases roaches into his giant glass tumbler, Orin cuts a deal with the A.F.R. and gives them the tape in return for letting him live. (He’s apparently still alive on p. 14.) The A.F.R. uses the tape to set off some sort of intracontinental conflagaration (16: “some sort of ultra-mach fighter too high overhead to hear slices the sky from south to north”) which apparently top
pl es the Gentle administration (n114: “[Y.G. is] the very last year of Subsidized Time”).
ellauri082.html on line 149: As seen in Chapter 1, Hal’s condition deepens until he literally can’t communicate at all, but no longer feels like a robot anymore. (12: “I’m not a machine. I feel and believe.”) The only thing he has left is tennis and he looks forward to
pl aying Ortho Stice in the final match of the WhataBurger. But Stice is possessed by his father (in the manuscript, Stice is called “the Wraithster”), so the novel ends as Hal finally gets to really interface with his father — in the only way he has left.
ellauri082.html on line 159: Accusations that DFW is “talking down to” or “intentionally alienating” with his vocabulary I can understand somewhat–I don’t believe he was actually intending to make peo
pl e feel stupid, but he’s clearly excessive and self-indulgent on occasion.
ellauri082.html on line 161: Ei Wallu kyllä ole erikoisen sivistynyt. Aika huonosti sulatettua tietosanakirjailua. Esim
e unibus pl uram . Mikä ihmeen
pl uram? Ei se ole mitään.
Ex uno pl ures olis latinaa.
Timeo hominem unius libri , vaixe olisi monen tiiliskiven kokoinen OED. QED. Pääsiköhän se zetaan asti loppupeleissä?
ellauri082.html on line 250: Epäilemättä Robert ja Emily Dickinson runoilevat kuolemasta, KILL! KILL! on FUCK! FUCK! in ohella keskeisin lyyrisistä aiheista. Tai mixei eeppisistäkin, mutta niissä on sentään aika lailla myös tota EAT! EAT! tematiikkaa. Netissä on runsaasti esimerkkiesseitä neuvottomille amerikkalaisille lukiolaisille joiden usein käsketään vertailla näitä runoja. Esim
pleessays.com/viewpaper/201167.html">tällänen :
ellauri082.html on line 274: Seuraava runo on se jonka Rothin homokaveri Benjamin melkein muisti ulkoa (miinus muutamia sti
pl uja. Viimenen säkeistö, alkupää on tälle alkuvalmistelua):
ellauri082.html on line 284: Robert Frost is by no means the only poet in whom a hunger for recognition comes into conflict with a wariness, an inner reticence, a distaste for self-revelation. But I think in him the conflict was particularly acute. On the one hand he could be quite shameless in his pursuit of favourable reviews and his presentation to the public of a folksy and largely misleading image. On the other hand we have cryptic comments like in this poem it is not made ex
pl icit what the ‘things forbidden’ are that he has managed to preserve for himself but I take them to be his poems, or those things that his poems keep alive, and he is rightly confident enough in his own powers as a poet to feel that he has succeeded.
ellauri082.html on line 306:
ploads/2020/01/ok-boomer-origen-600x400.png" /> !
ellauri082.html on line 308:
ellauri082.html on line 312: I’ve chosen to blog this particular passage, which runs ten pages in lenght, for a few reasons, the most honest reason being its unrelenting frankly honest potrayal of a person in the midst of a serious marijuana dependancy. Erdedy’s chapter has him eagerly awaiting the delivery of 200 grams of high-resin weed, of which he will force himself to smoke in its entirety in one hazy fog-induced sitting. Wallace, writing in the 3rd person, manages to get close enough to Erdedy’s running internal monologue to present to us a dee
pl y troubled young man’s addiction and the lenghts he is willing to go to–whislt also attempting to redeem himself through his numerous attempts in kicking the addiction–in order to satisfy his intense cravings.
ellauri082.html on line 314: Wallace’s tight prose and his very precise use of the drug-users thought process, such as
pl anning to smoke in large quantities to induce a horrible high in order to create an intense aversion to smoking or mulling over the decision to call a dealer for an update for their ETA, creates an incruciating relatable charatcer in Erdedy. Anyone who has struggled with slowing down or com
pl etely stopping a vice that has consumed their daily life may find this passage incredibly relatable.
ellauri082.html on line 316: She said he lived in a trailer by the river was 36 years old and was a motivational speaker. And was basically just not what you’d call a
pl easant or attractive person at all.
ellauri082.html on line 368: Näin unta että Fix und Foxin piirtäjä Rudolf Kauka (jonka nimi unessa oli jostain syystä Fink) oli nuorena Rikhard Fick nimisenä perustanut autokorjaamon ku
pl afolkkariin. Asensi sinne kaikki laitteet ja alkoi eziä asiakkaita. Sitten ihan zägällä se pääsi jonkun porhon autolaivueen omamekaanikoxi ja rikastui ja kuten sanotaan loppu oli historiaa. Missä vaiheessa se alkoi piirtää susi Lupoa ja niitä nenäkkäitä pikkukettuja ei selvinnyt koska heräsin.
ellauri082.html on line 385: James oli empiristi ja asetti perustaksi sen, mikä sisältyy välittömään kokemukseen. Filosofiassa jamesläinen ontologia oli
pl uralismia. Filosofisesti Jamesia pidetään idealismin ja Peirceä realismin kannattajana. Jamesin mukaan pragmatismi on panteistinen filosofia.
ellauri082.html on line 389: Jamesia pidetään nykyaikaisen uskontopsykologian perustajana. James kirjoitti muun muassa amerikkalaisen psykologian perusteoksena pidetyn The Princi
pl es of Psychology, joka ilmestyi vuonna 1890. Teoksillaan The Will to Believe (1897), The Varieties of Religious Experience (1902, suom. Uskonnollinen kokemus), Pragmatism (1907, suom. Pragmatismi) ja The Meaning of Truth (1909) James loi maineen yhtenä aikansa merkittävimmistä uskontofilosofeista. William Jamesin vuonna 1896 pitämän esitelmän ”The Will to Believe” mukaan uskonnollinen usko on äärettömän riskin ottamista. Se on kuin vuorikiipeilijän hengenvaarallinen loikka, joka ei voi toteutua ilman vankkaa uskoa hypyn onnistumiseen.
ellauri082.html on line 467: n) Sim
pl e Simon on lasten leikkiä. Sama idea kuin isin komando pimppelingissä.
ellauri082.html on line 473: Arvaa mistä näistä Hikinen Wallu piti niin paljon että piti mainita. Oikein, p). Sillä oli teininä Peeping Tom julisteita seinällä. Figures. k) oli hyvä arvaus, siitä pisteitä. Pam muistuttaa Wallun naisihanteita Joellea ja Hugh (Helen) Stee
pl yä. Joiden hybridi oli sen äiskäpäiskä Sally Jean Foster Wallace ellei se ollut aprillia.
ellauri082.html on line 491:
player" data-id="1-50157760">
ellauri082.html on line 523: Huumeet [hU:U:U:meet] ovat kenkä
pl ankin alkumuoto. Yleisimpiä käytön oireita ovat sukupuolitaudit, mutaatiot, hallusinaatiot, saatananpalvonta, erakoituminen, sukupuolielinten mutatoituminen, seksuaalisen suuntauksen muuttuminen sekä vielä kerran mutaatiot.
ellauri082.html on line 537: Kannabis: Saatavuus varsin hyvä: Mene Alankomaihin (jos olet alle 18-vuotias, ota mukaan väärennetyt tai varastetut paperit). Myös hamppukasvin sisäkasvatus on mahdollista. Kannabiksen käytön vaikutuksia ovat äkillinen repeäminen ilman mitään näkyvää syytä, selittämätön eloisuus, pään sekoaminen ja mahan ku
pl iminen, mutta se aiheuttaa myös impotenssia, unettomuutta sekä ruokahalujen menetystä.
ellauri082.html on line 552: Salvia: Hiisaamalla tai pureksimalla käytettävä hermafrodiittikukka. Päätyi huumeeksi Hitlerin eugeniikan seurauksena, kun pyrkimyksenä oli hävittää sukupuolivähemmistöt myös kasvikunnasta. Natsit sytyttivät meksikolaisten neegereiden salvianviljely
pl äntit tuleen ja pian huomasivat olevansa ihan vitun paukuissa. Salvia on oman tiensä kulkija psykotrooppina kuin kasvinakin, lisääntyy lätkäisemällä raajansa korkealta maahan, kuten kokeneet käyttäjänsäkin.
ellauri082.html on line 726: Samantasoista mietintää löytyy somen Fundamentti-
pl okista. Seuraava on lainausta siitä.
ellauri082.html on line 738: They found that young women with more dating experience and a greater desire for marriage were more attracted to narcissistic men. They write, “Despite future long-term mating desires which are unlikely to be achieved with a narcissistic male and possession of substantial mate sam
pl ing experience, females view the narcissistic male as a suitable partner.”
ellauri082.html on line 755: They argue that signaling both victimhood and virtue would maximize one’s ability to extract resources. Peo
pl e feel the most sympathy for a victim who is also a good person.
ellauri082.html on line 756: The researchers developed a Victim Signaling Scale, ranging from 1 = not at all to 5 = always. It asks how often peo
pl e engage in certain activities. These include: “Disclosed that I don’t feel accepted in society because of my identity.” And “Expressed how peo
pl e like me are underrepresented in the media and leadership.”
ellauri082.html on line 757: They found that Victim Signaling scores highly correlated with dark triad scores (r = .35). This association held after controlling for gender, ethnicity, income, and other factors that might make peo
pl e vulnerable to mistreatment.
ellauri082.html on line 762: They re
pl icated this association in a follow-up study. This time they used a different, more robust, dark triad scale. They then found a stronger correlation between the dark triad traits and victim signaling (r = .52).
ellauri082.html on line 769: The researchers then ran a study testing whether peo
pl e who score highly on victim signaling were more likely to exaggerate reports of mistreatment from a colleague to gain an advantage over them.
ellauri082.html on line 800: In downtown Boston you may see trash cans, cones, or other objects being used to save parking spots in residential areas throughout the winter. No one wants to shovel their spot to find it taken by the time they return! This is common practice, and com
pl etely legal.
ellauri082.html on line 809: En ole varma voiko tätä kuzua kaltoinkohteluxi, mutta kun minä kauan sitten liikuin kuivien ihmisten maailmassa, näin paljon varakkaita ja kouluja käyneitä ja lahjakkaita ja tasapainoisia valkoisia vanhempia, jotka suhtautuivat lastensa elämään kärsivällisesti ja rakastavasti ja kannustavasti ja huolta kantavan osallistuvasti, heidän kehunsa olivat vuolaita ja heidän rakentava kritiikkinsä di
pl omaattista ja heidän ehdottoman rakkauden ja lapsista välittämisen ilmaisunsa monisanaisia, toisin sanoen he täyttivät hyvän vanhemman määritelmän viimeistä piirtoa myöten, minä tosiaan näin valtavan määrän moitteettomia vanhempia ja näin myös kuinka he kasvattivat lapsia jotka olivat a) tunnetasolla vammaisia tai b) tappavan izekeskeisiä tai c) kroonisesti masentuneita tai d) psykiatrisia rajatapauxia tai e) narsistisessa izeinhossa rypeviä tai f) neuroottisen vimmaisia/riippuvaisia tai g) jollain psykosomaattisella tavalla rampautuneita tai h) ties minkälainen yhdistelmä kohdista a-g).
ellauri083.html on line 28:
HYVÄÄ PUUTA play:none">Puutaheinää
ellauri083.html on line 33: Google Infinite Jest resources and you'll come up with 62,500 results. Whether's it's the novel's wiki or one of the original Wallace celebration sites, The Howling Fantods, sup
pl ement your reading when you're lost or just interested in getting additional context.
ellauri083.html on line 88: LYDEN: "The Eternal Wonder" will be published this fall. Edgar Walsh, who manages his mother's literary estate, says he had a com
pl ex reaction to the news.
ellauri083.html on line 106: WALSH: Yeah. You know, peo
pl e often ask me: Have you read everything your mother wrote? No.
ellauri083.html on line 116: WALSH: The novel follows the life of a brilliant young man, a genius, from his birth to his military career to a love affair with an older woman in London to Paris, where he meets a Chinese girl. And it is a very personal, fictional ex
pl anation of themes, of toleration and humanity that informed Pearl's work.
ellauri083.html on line 122: Solmu Mäkelä teki taikatemppuja. "Solmu" oli Helmin ja sen pikku ystävien peitenimi siittimelle.
"Solmu" Hamsun kirjoitti aika samanlaisen rags to riches and back farmi
pl äjäyxen kuin Helmi $ Taala.
ellauri083.html on line 124: It can never be said of the Swedish Academy that they don't know what they like. Between Independent Peo
pl e, The Growth of the Soil, The Good Earth, and probably several others I haven't read yet it seems clear that the path to a Nobel Prize in literature is the one trod by struggling farmers out in the countryside.
ellauri083.html on line 131: Very different from his novel Hunger, here Hamsun has written a sweeping story of one man's accom
pl ishments as a homesteader in northern Norway near the border with Sweden. Isak, a young and very strong man, with no fear of work, goes looking for a good
pl ace to settle. He walks and walks, looking for a
pl ace that has everything he needs: water, haying grounds, pasture, areas to farm, timber. When he finally finds it, he settles in. There is a coastal town a full day's walk away (20 miles? 10 miles?). He puts out word that he needs a woman's help--and lo and behold, Inger comes. She too has no fear of work, and she has a harelip--teased for much of her life, she finds a good man in Isak. They work, they have several children, Inger is imprisoned for 6 years. Others come and settle the area between their farm Sellanra and the town. A fascinating story of rural northern Norway in the 2nd half of the 19th century.
ellauri083.html on line 139: Following the marriage of Wang Lung and O-Lan, both work hard on their farm and slowly save enough money to buy one
pl ot of land at a time from the Hwang family. O-Lan delivers three sons and three daughters; the first daughter becomes mentally handicapped as a result of severe malnutrition brought on by famine. Her father greatly pities her and calls her "Poor Fool," a name by which she is addressed throughout her life. O-Lan kills her second daughter at birth to spare her the misery of growing up in such hard times, and to give the remaining family a better chance to survive. Pearl's daughter Carol was mentally handicapped too.
ellauri083.html on line 141: During the devastating famine and drought, the family must flee to a large city in the south to find work. Wang Lung's malevolent uncle offers to buy his possessions and land, but for significantly less than their value. The family sells everything except the land and the house. Wang Lung then faces the long journey south, contem
pl ating how the family will survive walking, when he discovers that the "firewagon" (the Chinese word for the newly built train) takes peo
pl e south for a fee.
ellauri083.html on line 147: As Wang Lung becomes more prosperous, he buys a concubine named Lotus. O-Lan endures the betrayal of her husband when he takes the only jewels she had asked to keep for herself, two pearls, so that he can make them into earrings to present to Lotus. O-Lan's health and morale deteriorate, and she eventually dies just after witnessing her first son's wedding. Wang Lung finally appreciates her
pl ace in his life as he mourns her passing. Farewell my concubine.
ellauri083.html on line 149: Wang Lung and his family move into town and rent the old House of Hwang. Now an old man, he desires peace within his family but is annoyed by constant disputes, especially between his first and second sons and their wives. Wang Lung's third son runs away to become a soldier. At the end of the novel, Wang Lung overhears his sons
pl anning to sell the land and tries to dissuade them. They say they will do as he wishes, but smile knowingly at each other. Ah what's the use...
ellauri083.html on line 153: Independent Peo
pl e (Icelandic: Sjálfstætt fólk) is an epic novel by Nobel laureate
Halldór Laxness , originally published in two volumes in 1934 and 1935; literally the title means "Self-standing folk". It deals with the struggle of poor Icelandic farmers in the early 20th century, only freed from debt bondage in the last generation, and surviving on isolated crofts in an inhospitable landscape.
ellauri083.html on line 155: The novel is considered among the foremost exam
pl es of social realism in Icelandic fiction in the 1930s. It is an indictment of materialism, the cost of the self-reliant spirit to relationships, and capitalism itself. This book, along with several other major novels, helped Laxness win the Nobel Prize in Literature in 1955.
ellauri083.html on line 157: Independent Peo
pl e is the story of the sheep farmer Guðbjartur Jónsson, generally known in the novel as Bjartur of Summerhouses, and his struggle for independence.
ellauri083.html on line 159: The "first chapter summons up the days when the world was first settled, in 874 AD—for that is the year when the Norsemen arrived in Iceland, and one of the book's wry conceits is that no other world but Iceland exists. ... The book is set in the early decades of the twentieth century but ... Independent Peo
pl e is a pointedly timeless tale. It reminds us that life on an Icelandic croft had scarcely altered over a millennium". As the story begins, Bjartur ("bright" or "fair") has recently managed to put down the first payment on his own farm, after eighteen years working as a shepherd at Útirauðsmýri, the home of the well-to-do local bailiff, a man he detests. The land that he buys is said to be cursed by Saint Columba, referred to as "the fiend Kolumkilli", and haunted by an evil woman named Gunnvör, who made a pact with Kólumkilli.
ellauri083.html on line 161: Defiantly, Bjartur refuses to add a stone to Gunnvör's cairn to appease her, and in his optimism also changes the name of the farm from Winterhouses to Summerhouses. He is also newly wed to a young woman called Rósa, a fellow worker at Rauðsmýri, and is determined that they should live as independent peo
pl e.
ellauri083.html on line 221: Some historians have suggested that Dickens based Defarge on Anne-Josèphe Théroigne de Mericourt, a revolutionary who
pl ayed a key role in street demonstrations.
ellauri083.html on line 244:
VIDEO
ellauri083.html on line 245:
VIDEO
ellauri083.html on line 246:
VIDEO
ellauri083.html on line 334: When, in turn, this anger proves incapable of restoring the subject to the earlier, wished-for state of things, the characteristic symptoms of clinical depression set in: feelings of hel
pl essness, a tendency to reproach the self for its inadequacy, and, not least of all, the drawing away of
cathectic energies from the ego, "emptying [it] until it is totally impoverished." This impoverishment is also referred to by Freud and others as inhibition: "inhibition of all activity," "general inhibition," "com
pl ete motor inhibition," or "an inhibition of functions including the interest in the external world." And Bibring has instructively spoken of it as the "exhaustion of ego libido due to an unsolvable conflict" (p. The rhetoric of exhaustion and the exhaustion of rhetoric: Erskine Caldwell in the thirties)
ellauri083.html on line 336: For all their profusion, these paled in comparison with Sachs's newest dis
pl ay pieces: The Cabinet, 2014, and The Rockeths, 2017. The former was a folding case fashioned from orange-and-white striped barricades and festooned with hundreds of tools, hung in groups and inscribed with the names of individuals who have "inspired, influenced, or frightened" the artist--from Le Corbusier and Louis Kahn to the members of the Wu-Tang Clan--while the latter was less a cabinet than a kind of portable workbench and shelving unit, similarly jam-packed with the tools of the artist's trade, as well as a collection of model rockets, all again labeled to namecheck various figures of personal importance--scientists, musicians, artists; Apollo, Dionysus, Stringer Bell. The fetishistic frisson the assembled materials (pens,
pl iers, drill bits, tape measures) clearly provoke in Sachs was made even more ex
pl icit in McMasterbation, 2016, one of a trio of scale-model space modules arrayed on
pl inths. Featuring a copy of the legendarily comprehensive McMaster-Carr hardware catalogue spread open like a porn mag centerfold designed for lonely gearheads--alongside a ready sup
pl y of Vaseline and a handy tissue dispenser--it was part
cathectic confession of objectophilia and part self-derogating indictment of his own work's tendencies toward sometimes masturbatory excess. Smart and stupid, funny and somehow a bit sad, it was classic Sachs: too much information, in every sense of the phrase.
ellauri083.html on line 338: Hendershot recalls that, in the Schreber case, God was believed to manifest his creative and destructive power as celestial rays (Freud 22). As with spider-webs and hedgehogs quills, this radial pattern describing dilation and contraction, movement back and forth from center to circumference and from circumference to center, is the essential figure for the paranoid narcissism of a subject who feels threatened by the world and guilty for having taken "his own body [...] as his love-object" (Freud 60). Signaling Fistule's repressed homosexuality, the rays of his intelligence had first been focused on the masochistic annihilation of his genitals, which he denies were the original object of his love ("organes hideux," "vomitoires de dejections"), and then had been used in reconstructing a sexless new reality. Insisting on his exemption from the Naturalist law of biological determinism, Fistule denies his human parentage and maintains that he was born of a star, which, shining like the rays of his genius, had inseminated him and allowed him to be the father of himself, causa sui. Homosexual guilt initially projected as the corruptibility of matter is overcome by Fistule's princi
pl e of Stellogenesis, which turns flesh into radiance and bodies into starlight. As Hendershot concludes: "In Freud's theory, the paranoiac withdraws from the world (
decathexis ), directs his or her
cathectic energy to the ego resulting in self-aggrandizement, and then attempts to reestablish a
cathectic relationship with the world in the form of a delusional system"
ellauri083.html on line 348: Early seasons aired on network prime time while the Vietnam War was still going on; the show was forced to walk the fine line of commenting on that war while at the same time not seeming to protest against it. For this reason, the show's discourse, under the cover of comedy, often questioned, mocked, and grap
pl ed with America's role in the Cold War.
ellauri083.html on line 369: Hugh Stee
pl yn isä kirjoitteli kirjeitä M*A*S*Hin majuri Burnsille. Tää majuri oli ällöttävä paskiainen miehexi ja täydellinen tomppeli. Hughin isä ei pystynyt erottamaan Burnsia sitä näytelleestä hemmosta. Mullakin menee Wallu ja sen avatarit koko ajan sekasin. Rodney ei uskaltanut tulla Suomeen sen jälkeen kun se oli jättänyt rumasti Allisonin Peyton Placessa. Mummelit halus mätkiä sen littiin käsilaukulla.
ellauri083.html on line 376: Farrow has steadfastly supported her daughter throughout the years—but in Allen v. Farrow, she says she has also grown accustomed to Allen attacking her character and parenting skills in the press. (For decades Allen has claimed that Farrow coached Dylan, goading her into accusing Allen after Allen left Farrow for Previn.) Farrow ex
pl ains her conflicting feelings to the cameras, saying that she wholeheartedly supported Dylan’s decision to write a 2014 op-ed for The New York Times outlining the abuse she claims to have suffered. But privately, Farrow admits in the docuseries, she “crum
pl ed up inside,” knowing that Allen would likely resume his media attacks on her. “He couldn’t go after Dylan, because she was a child at the time, so he’d come after me.”
ellauri083.html on line 378: “What astounds me,” said Ziering in an interview, is that for the past nearly three decades, peo
pl e assume that this has been a matter of “he said, she said”—meaning Allen’s word versus Farrow’s. But after Ziering and codirector Kirby Dick began their research, they realized, “Actually, it’s been a ‘he said, he said’ situation. Mia didn’t even speak until the Vanity Fair interview [in 2013]. Never. She is such a private person. That’s really important to know. And she was sort of blindsided by all these events that happened to her. And kept trying to navigate the best that she could just to protect her children and family.”
ellauri083.html on line 392: Ei ihme eze mies haluis olla Jeesus. Ei sen tarvis enää herätä kuudelta ja mennä byrokraatixi, se vois vaan lennähtää taivaaseen ja istuutua iskän oikealle puolelle mukavaan nojatuoliin tuomizemaan eläviä ja kuolleita. Pyhä Pietari hoitaisi byrokratian. Ynnäisi
pl ussit ja miinusit, ei tarvis edes paljon miettiä. Senkun paukuttaisi tuomioita pöytään nuijalla. Ja vetäs pilveä.
ellauri083.html on line 406:
VIDEO
ellauri083.html on line 434: Supposedly, NASA scientists and engineers puzzled over this problem until one of them opened the Bible to Joshua 10:12–14 and 2 Kings 20:8–11. The NASA personnel supposedly came to realize that their missing day could be ex
pl ained by addition of nearly a day at the time of Joshua and an additional 40 minutes at the time of Hezekiah, thus proving that these biblical events actually occurred.
ellauri083.html on line 438: He reasoned that the battle was on the twenty-fourth day of the fourth month of the Hebrew civil calendar in the 2,555th year after the creation. This was the 933,285th day since creation. From this, Totten determined that this day was a Tuesday. Next, Totten calculated backward in time from June 17, 1890 to the battle of Gibeon. He concluded that the battle was 1,217,530 days previously, which was a Wednesday. Hence, there was a day missing. Of course, Totten’s computation required very precise dates, something that most peo
pl e today would find ludicrous. However, Totten managed to obtain some audience in the late 19th century. While most peo
pl e today are not impressed with such an approach, apparently invoking a computer, as in the Hill story, is sufficient to convince some peo
pl e today. This story has been debunked many times, so it is a shame that it keeps being repeated.
ellauri083.html on line 479:
ploads/2020/03/Pillsbury.jpg?ssl=1" width="50%"/>
ellauri083.html on line 488:
ploads/posts/2016-01/9_shrek_the_third.jpg" width="50%"/>
ellauri083.html on line 494:
VIDEO
ellauri083.html on line 524:
plicated-joy/">https://sites.la.utexas.edu/dfw12fall/compl icated-joy/
ellauri083.html on line 527: What does “com
pl icated joy” mean? I suppose we could say that Joelle gets a com
pl icated form of
pl easure from stringing Gately along. Although I’m not sure I believe that
pl easure is necessarily equivalent to joy…there is a lot of com
pl icated
pl easure in the book, i.e. addictions to
pl easurable substances, sex with underage partners, killing animals, etc. But are we truly supposed to believe that these characters are experiencing joy in their lives?
ellauri083.html on line 529: I can’t say I really see it at all. As much as I love this book, the only person who I would say comes close to experiencing “com
pl icated joy” is Mario, whose emotions are sim
pl e and straightforward, only made more com
pl ex by his contorted body. I think most peo
pl e in the book experience a sort of numbness, or they are searching for a kind of numbness. To me, even Gately’s emotions and thoughts are dulled by the inane daily tasks he must com
pl ete, although I suppose you could argue that being free from substance addiction gives him a small sense of pride.
ellauri083.html on line 543: And all the peo
pl e went their way to eat, and to drink, and to send portions, and to make great
mirth , because they had understood the words that were declared unto them.
ellauri083.html on line 552: I said in mine heart, Go to now, I will prove thee with
mirth , therefore enjoy
pl easure: and, behold, this also is vanity.
ellauri083.html on line 575: For thus saith the LORD of hosts, the God of Israel; Behold, I will cause to cease out of this
pl ace in your eyes, and in your days, the voice of
mirth , and the voice of
gladness , the voice of the bridegroom, and the voice of the bride.
ellauri083.html on line 591:
And all the peopl e came up after him, and the peopl e piped with pipes, and rejoiced with great joy , so that the earth rent with the sound of them.
ellauri083.html on line 597: Glory and honour are in his presence; strength and gladness are in his pl ace.
ellauri083.html on line 606: And in every province, and in every city, whithersoever the king's commandment and his decree came, the Jews had joy and gladness , a feast and a good day. And many of the peopl e of the land became Jews; for the fear of the Jews fell upon them.
ellauri083.html on line 627: Thou art my hiding pl ace; thou shalt preserve me from trouble; thou shalt compass me about with songs of deliverance. Selah.
ellauri083.html on line 667: The Bible is surprisingly full of humorous episodes that can make one chuckle or even laugh out loud. One of the first jokes God pulled was in the book of Genesis. When visiting Abraham and Sarah, God said to the elderly coupl e (well passed child-bearing years), “I will bless [Sarah], and moreover I will give you a son by her; I will bless her, and she shall be a mother of nations; kings of peopl es shall come from her” (Genesis 17:16).
ellauri083.html on line 673: Sarah had a similar reaction to the news, “Sarah laughed to herself, saying, ‘After I have grown old, and my husband is old, shall I have pl easure?’” (Genesis 18:12) God caught her laughing, but “Sarah denied, saying, ‘I did not laugh’; for she was afraid. He said, ‘No, but you did laugh’” (Genesis 18:15). You can’t pull a fast one on God! But God can pull a fast one on you! That's the diff!
ellauri083.html on line 677: Another humorous episode happened in the book of Numbers, when the Peopl e of Israel were compl aining in the desert. They called out like a petulant child, “O that we had meat to eat! We remember the fish we ate in Egypt for nothing, the cucumbers, the melons, the leeks, the onions, and the garlic, but now our strength is dried up, and there is nothing at all but this manna to look at” (Numbers 11:4-6).
ellauri083.html on line 683: In the book of Kings, Elijah is having a “Battle Royale” with some pagan priests and taunts them by saying, “Call louder, for he is a god; he may be busy doing his business, or may be on a journey. Perhaps he is asleep and must be awakened.” (1 Kings 18:27). Some translations make “doing his business” more expl icit by translating it as, “relieving himself.” This is in accord with the original Hebrew and so Elijah is taunting them by saying their god might be busy going to the bathroom!
ellauri088.html on line 27: HUMAN play:none">Pyllykielitiedettä
ellauri088.html on line 39: Tulokas on yxi pienestä tosin kasvavasta kourallisesta skififilmejä joissa on NAINEN pääosassa. Joku Eric Heisserer on huomauttanut että joukko studioista lupasi ottaa leffan vaan jos sankari vaihdettaisiin miehexi. Mutta päähenkilön, lingvistiikkaexpertin (Louise Banx) naismaisuus on kriittinen osa hahmon identiteettiä. (Oikeastikin valtaosa lingvisteistä on naisia!) Hollywoodin skifi on historiallisesti luottanut sankarillisiin, toimintasuuntautuneisiin miesesitaistelijoihin. Tulokas on sixi aivan omituinen, kun siinä on briljantti, kompl exi sankaritar joka ei saisi edes valomiekkaa päälle.
ellauri088.html on line 53: (Tästä ois Marvel Comixin Andrew maxanut vaikka mitä - sen unelmat pysähtyneestä auringosta olis toteutuneet. Tai hetkinen, jos ei aika liiku, miten pääsee sitten liha liikkumaan? Pornostillikuvat ei vedä vertoja eläville kuville. Ehkä se voisi pl ärätä ruutuja nopeasti niinkuin koulukirjan reunaan piirrettyä tikku-ukkoa (tai no tikku-ukkoa ja -akkaa). Ei hizi, eihän pl äräämisestäkään tule mitään ellei filmi etene. Taitaa olla pattitilanne.)
ellauri088.html on line 86: Gustav Fechner (1801-1887) argued for psychophysical parallelism, according to which the mental and physical worlds run parallel to each other but do not interact. Fechner developed the Weber-Fechner law, according to which the perceived intensity of a stimulus increases arithmetically as a constant multipl e of the physical intensity of the stimulus or in other words, changes of physical intensity gallop along at a brisk pace while the corresponding changes of perceived intensity creep along. The Weber and the Weber-Fechner laws were the first laws to provide a mathematical statement of the relationship between the mind and the body. Another significant contribution when S. S. Stevens (1906-1973) demonstrated that psychological intensity grows as an exponential function of physical stimulus intensity, that is, equal stimulus ratios always produce equal sensory ratios although different ratios hold for different sensory modalities. (Siis mitä? Aritmeettisesti vai logaritmisesti?)
ellauri088.html on line 92: the power of the will to organize the mind’s content into higher-level thought processes. An associationist model, from simpl e elements to larger compounds, but it does not simpl y progress mechanically, the will has an organizing effect.
ellauri088.html on line 108: VIDEO
ellauri088.html on line 119: Vaccinet som skulle rädda oss alla finns helt pl ötsligt inte. Den opportune Ulf Kristersson (M), som vet hur allting ska vara efteråt, tycker vi ska lämna EU:s vaccinkö och köpa eget.
ellauri088.html on line 133: 4-6 Sedan trodde jag att jag skulle bli nöjd genom att sätta igång stora byggnadsprojekt. Jag byggde hus och anlade vingårdar, trädgårdar, parker, fruktodlingar, och slutligen byggde jag stora dammar som skulle användas för bevattning av alla pl anteringar.
ellauri088.html on line 338: ploads/2018/06/Roni-Arvonen.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri088.html on line 384: Nu ska du inte äta upp dina ord. Sådana där hippies förtjänar gummikulor, skriver vainionpää. För att ge eftertryck till sitt krav flikar han in att demonstranteerna också ska bekämpas med vattenkanoner och fråntas alla socialförmåner. Det vore helt berättigat att de här terroristerna skulle bli av med sina bostads- arbetslöshets - och utkomststöd för varje böt de tvingas betala. Gummikulor och vattenkanoner skulle lära dem hyfs och pl i, skriver Vainionpää på Twitter.
ellauri088.html on line 524: Kasautuminen ja kurjistuminen on kapitalismin laki, se on riistäjän rautainen laki. Ei siinä muusta ole kysymys kuin exponentiaalisesta kasvusta. Se on aivan luonnon normitoimintaa. Ässäkäyrää seurataan ja sitten kaoottista nyintää kunnes ampl itudi menee nollaan ja laji katoaa.
ellauri088.html on line 540: Jerome Clapp "Klapka" Oliver Jerome (May 2, 1859 Caldmore, Walsall Staffordshire, England - June 14, 1927, Northampton General Hospital, Northampton) oli englantilainen kynäilijä ja "humoristi". Senskä muutti sukunnimensä Clapp Jeromexi. Eikös clap ole joku veneerinen tauti? Joo tippuri. Siinäpä se. Jerome oli muutenkin huonosta kodista, rupusakkia kuten kolleegansa Charles Chapl in vähän myöhemmin. Isä oli ironmonger ja lay preacher who dabbled in architecture.
ellauri088.html on line 547: His 1908 pl ay The Passing of the Third Floor Back introduced a more sombre and religious Jerome. The pl ay was a tremendous commercial success. It was twice made into film, in 1918 and in 1935. However, the pl ay was condemned by critics – Max Beerbohm described it as "vilely stupid" and as written by a "tenth-rate writer".
ellauri088.html on line 555: Three invalids.—Sufferings of George and Harris.—A victim to one hundred and seven fatal maladies.—Useful prescriptions.—Cure for liver compl aint in children.—We agree that we are overworked, and need rest.—A week on the rolling deep?—George suggests the River.—Montmorency lodges an objection.—Original motion carried by majority of three to one.
ellauri088.html on line 563: Mrs. P. arouses us.—George, the sluggard.—The “weather forecast” swindle.—Our luggage.—Depravity of the small boy.—The peopl e gather round us.—We drive off in great style, and arrive at Waterloo.—Innocence of South Western Officials concerning such worldly things as trains.—We are afloat, afloat in an open boat.
ellauri088.html on line 567: The river in its Sunday garb.—Dress on the river.—A chance for the men.—Absence of taste in Harris.—George’s blazer.—A day with the fashion-pl ate young lady.—Mrs. Thomas’s tomb.—The man who loves not graves and coffins and skulls.—Harris mad.—His views on George and Banks and lemonade.—He performs tricks.
ellauri088.html on line 577: We are very fond of pine-appl e, all three of us. We looked at the picture on the tin; we thought of the juice. We smiled at one another, and Harris got a spoon ready.
ellauri088.html on line 599: In addition, here’s a much earlier spoof of German lieder, from the British comic novel “Three Men in a Boat,” published in 1889. I think it shows just how pervasive and long-standing is the English-speaker’s resistance to the rarefied world of the German art-song. The excerpt is also very silly and probably tells you at least as much about British anti-intellectualism and compl acency as it does about German over-earnestness.
ellauri088.html on line 616: Will it be the same in the future? Will the prized treasures of to-day always be the cheap trifles of the day before? Will rows of our willow-pattern dinner-pl ates be ranged above the chimneypieces of the great in the years 2000 and odd? Will the white cups with the gold rim and the beautiful gold flower inside (species unknown), that our Sarah Janes now break in sheer light-heartedness of spirit, be carefully mended, and stood upon a bracket, and dusted only by the lady of the house?
ellauri088.html on line 618: The “sampl er” that the eldest daughter did at school will be spoken of as “tapestry of the Victorian era,” and be almost priceless. The blue-and-white mugs of the present-day roadside inn will be hunted up, all cracked and chipped, and sold for their weight in gold, and rich peopl e will use them for claret cups; and travellers from Japan will buy up all the “Presents from Ramsgate,” and “Souvenirs of Margate,” that may have escaped destruction, and take them back to Jedo as ancient English curios.
ellauri089.html on line 28: Illegal Aliens play:none">Ufoa
ellauri089.html on line 37: I wonder how harmless such peopl e are? To what extent civilization is retarded by the laughing jack-asses, the empty-minded belittlers? Nature's obvious mistakes? Mies sitä tulee räkänokasta, muttei tyhjän naurajasta. (Heinlein)
ellauri089.html on line 51: He was a sixth-generation German-American; a family tradition had it that Heinleins fought in every American war, starting with the War of Independence. Jim Marlowe, in Red Planet, and Don Harvey, in Between Planets, participate in insurrections patterned after the American Revolution, a pl ot Heinlein would most fully expl oit in his adult novel, The Moon is a Harsh Mistress (1966).
ellauri089.html on line 55: Siisteys on sexikästä Bobista. Peewee on melkein nätti kun sen vaatteet on pesty eikä niistä puutu nappeja, ja rintanapitkin on kiinni, tosin Peeweellä ei vielä ole mainittavasti rintoja. 10v kuluttua se voisi olla sievä. Ja älykkyys on sekin sexikästä. Peewee osaa liu'uttaa laskutikkua kuin teekkari. 2*2 = noin 4. I remembered hearing Dad say: "Some peopl e insist that mediocre is better than best. They delight in clipping wings beause they themselves can't fly. They despise brains because they have none. Pfah! They laugh at clean panties because their own are soiled!" Touché, Lapukka, eikö mitä?
ellauri089.html on line 59: He spent his childhood in Kansas City, Missouri. The outlook and values of this time and pl ace (in his own words, "The Bible Belt") had a definite influence on his fiction, especially in his later works.
ellauri089.html on line 62: Heinlein's experience in the Navy exerted a strong influence on his character and writing. In 1929, he graduated from the Naval Academy with the equivalent of a Bachelor of Arts degree in Engineering, ranking fifth in his class academically but with a class standing of 20th of 243 due to discipl inary demerits.
ellauri089.html on line 69: Heinlein draws on his knowledge of school societies to make the Academy a “real” pl ace; there are bull sessions, roommate problems, anxieties about passing, shared food packages, and parties at the Academy just as there are at any school, especially a boarding school or college. Also, as Matt becomes more and more a Cadet, he finds, as do many of Heinlein’s juvenile heroes, that he has grown beyond his family and that there is an unbridgeable gulf between his perspective as a Cadet and his parents’ perspectives as ground-dwellers in Kansas City. His living and working in space is a part of it, but even more important, Matt realizes, is his membership in an international/interpl anetary organization. He is no longer the boy he was when he left home. He becomes aware of this difference and, understanding it, is able to deal with a family that now seems somewhat provincial to him.
ellauri089.html on line 76: Afterwards Heinlein supported himself at several occupations, including real estate sales and bitcoin mining, but for some years found money in short suppl y.
ellauri089.html on line 77: Heinlein used his science fiction to earn money and as a way to expl ore his provocative social and political ideas, and to speculate how progress in science and engineering might shape the future of politics, race, religion, and sex. Within the framework of his science-fiction stories, Heinlein repeatedly addressed certain social themes: the importance of being earnest, individual liberty and self-reliance, the nature of incestual sexual relationships, the obligation individuals owe to their societies, the influence of organized religion on culture and government, and the tendency of society to repress nonconformist thought. He also speculated on the influence of space travel on human cultural practices.
ellauri089.html on line 83: His work sometimes had controversial aspects, such as pl ural marriage in The Moon is a Harsh Mistress, militarism in Starship Troopers and technologically competent women characters that were formidable, yet often stereotypically feminine – such as Friday.
ellauri089.html on line 87: Ginny undoubtedly served as a model for many of his intelligent, fiercely independent female characters. She was a chemist and rocket test engineer, and held a higher rank in the Navy than Heinlein himself. She was also an accompl ished college athlete, earning four letter words.
ellauri089.html on line 100: While at the Philadelphia Naval Shipyards, Asimov, Heinlein, and de Camp brainstormed unconventional approaches to kamikaze attacks, such as listening to detect approaching pl anes.
ellauri089.html on line 108: “[T]here seems to have been an actual decline in rational thinking. The United States had become a pl ace where entertainers and professional athletes were mistaken for peopl e of importance. They were idolized and treated as leaders; their opinions were sought on everything and they took themselves just as seriously—after all, if an entertainer is paid a million or more a year, he knows he is important ... so his opinions of foreign affairs and domestic policies must be important, too, even though he proves himself to be ignorant and subliterate every time he opens his mouth.”
ellauri089.html on line 116: There's no gap between will and action, for Heinlein's juveniles adulthood is devotion to something they want to do. This is the origin of the books' guilelessness—for that worldview is innocence, down at its root, even when the grand theme of a book is slavery, war, or survival in harsh circumstances. Being human isn't an insoluble problem for them. It's a puzzle that has a solution: be juvenile. What made Robert Heinlein inimitable was the easiness of the peopl e in those stories.
ellauri089.html on line 124: During the 1930s and 1940s, Heinlein was deepl y interested in Alfred Korzybski's general semantics and attended a number of seminars on the subject. His views on epistemology seem to have flowed from that interest, and his fictional characters continue to express Korzybskian views to the very end of his writing career.
ellauri089.html on line 132: Heinlein's name is often associated with the competent hero, a character archetype who, though he or she may have flaws and limitations, is a strong, accompl ished person able to overcome any soluble problem set in their path. They tend to feel confident overall, have a broad life experience and set of skills, and not give up when the going gets tough.
ellauri089.html on line 141: I agree with R H peopl e in entertainment didn't have a practical education like most who went to college, learned a bunch of stuff...then went in to the real world and found some of what they learned was wrong and only works in the theoretical mind of a college professor.
ellauri089.html on line 149: The last juvenile, Have Space Suit—Will Travel, recapitulates and surpasses the other books in the series as Kip Russell travels first to the moon, then to Pluto, then to a pl anet in Vega’s system, and finally to the Lesser Magellanic Cloud; he eventually comes home by a circular route! All of the books feature young peopl e, primarily young men—but a surprising number of strong female characters, growing up and going through the process of separating themselves from their sometimes ununderstanding families, discovering their real identities, successfully dealing with bar mitzwah, and by the story’s end, entering the adult world as foreskinless and capable peopl e.
ellauri089.html on line 151: Certainly his best-known and most successful books came after the decision to write entirely for an adult audience, with Stranger in a Strange Land in 1961 and The Moon Is a Harsh Mistress in 1966. And in such books as Farnham's Freehold (1964), he clearly felt freer to express the libertinism that had been impl icit in all his earlier published work.
ellauri089.html on line 153: Most of what Heinlein wrote after 1958 expl ores ideas that are more interesting, more profound, in certain senses, than any of his early work, like quirky sex. But at some point, even his most fervent fans want to return to books where the hero doesn't use time travel and advanced technology to have sex with his mother, his granddaughter, and his own clone. Or his computer made flesh.
ellauri089.html on line 155: He does have a minor talent for aphorism: "Specialization is for insects." "Progress isn't made by early risers. It's made by lazy men trying to find easier ways to do something." "When a pl ace gets crowded enough to require IDs, social collapse is not far away."
ellauri089.html on line 159: For average readers, Heinlein tells a good story; for better readers, Heinlein has challenges; and for the best readers, there is a kind of shared inside knowledge, a delight the reader feels when Heinlein makes a passing reference to Schiaperelli (sic) and the reader knows, without Heinlein’s ever expl aining, who Schiaperelli was.
ellauri089.html on line 168: Schiaparelli tutki aurinkokuntaa, ja havainnoituaan Marsia hän laati pl aneetan kartan ja nimesi sen meret ja mantereet. Vuonna 1877 hän uskoi löytäneensä Marsin pinnalta pitkiä suoria muotoja, joita hän kutsui italiaksi nimellä ”canali” tarkoittaen kanaaleja. Käännösvirheen vuoksi niitä kuitenkin ryhdyttiin kutsumaan ”kanaviksi”, mikä johti kuvitelmiin Marsissa vaikuttavasta sivilisaatiosta. Muutama vuosikymmen myöhemmin Schiaparellin havainto todettiin joka tapauksessa optiseksi harhaksi.
ellauri089.html on line 172: July 20, 1969, is probably the most important day in human history - the day men from Earth first set foot on another pl anet, Earth's moon. Robert Heinlein was a guest commentator (along with Arthur C. Clarke) with Walter Cronkite on this historic occasion.
ellauri089.html on line 203: Heinlein depicts a Heaven ruled by snotty angels and a Hell where everyone has a wonderful, or at least productive, time — with Mary Magdalene shuttling breezily between both pl aces.
ellauri089.html on line 212: History does not record anywhere at any time a religion that has any rational basis. Religion is a crutch for peopl e not strong enough to stand up to the unknown without help. But like dandruff, most peopl e do have a religion and spend money on it and seem to derive considerable pl easure from fiddling with it.
ellauri089.html on line 401: Preface. It appears to me that in Ethics, as in all other philosophical studies, the difficulties and disagreements, of which its history is full, are mainly due to a very simpl e cause: namely to the attempt to answer questions, without first discovering precisely what question it is which you desire to answer. ...
ellauri089.html on line 407: § 2. but this is not that they are concerned with human conduct, but that they are concerned with a certain predicate "good", and its converse "bad", which may be appl ied both to conduct and to other things. …
ellauri089.html on line 415: § 6. and the answer to this question is that it is indefinable … indefinable ja simpl e ei ole sama asia. G.E.Mooren määäritelmäteoria oli aika alkeellista tasoa. Kyllä "hyvä" on hajotettavissa tekijöihin ja sillä on oma logiikka, kuten olen osoittanut tärkeässä artikkelissani hyvästä joka ilmestyi Kouvolan julkaisusarjassa.
ellauri089.html on line 417: § 7. or simpl e: for if by definition be meant the analysis of an object of thought, only compl ex objects can be defined; …
ellauri089.html on line 423: § 10. "Good", then, denotes one unique simpl e object of thought among innumerable others; but this object has very commonly been identified with some other—a fallacy which may be called "the naturalistic fallacy" … Tässä Jyriltä alkaa lähteä riimu käsistä. Sillä on niin iso lehmälauma ojassa, ettei se pysty pitelemään sitä. 1 lehmistä on että ainoa merkizevä hyvä on termiittiapinoiden hyvä, lehmistä ei mitään väliä. Niitä on hyvä popsia aivan vapaasti. Koska lehmät ei ole meikäläisiä, niillä ei ole sielua, ei äänioikeutta eikä armeijaa, ja ne maistuu meistä apinoista hyvältä. So there!
ellauri089.html on line 425: § 11. and which reduces what is used as a fundamental principl e of Ethics either to a tautology or to a statement about the meaning of a word. …
ellauri089.html on line 429: § 13. and if it were avoided, it would be pl ain that the only alternatives to the admission that "good" is indefinable, are either that it is compl ex, or that there is no notion at all peculiar to Ethics—alternatives which can only be refuted by an appeal to inspection, but which can be so refuted.
ellauri089.html on line 439: § 18. The investigation of intrinsic values is compl icated by the fact that the value of a whole may be different from the sum of the value of its parts, …
ellauri089.html on line 443: § 20. The term "organic whole" might well be used to denote that a whole has this property, since, of the two other properties which it is commonly used to impl y, …
ellauri089.html on line 455: § 25. Such theories may be divided into two groups (1) Metaphysical, (2) Naturalistic; and the second group may be subdivided into two others, (a) theories which declare some natural object, other than pl easure, to be sole good, (b) Hedonism. This present chapter will deal with (a). …
ellauri089.html on line 469: § 32. but Mr Spencer is vague as to the ethical relations of "pl easure" and "evolution", and his Naturalism may be mainly Naturalistic Hedonism. …
ellauri089.html on line 471: § 33. A discussion of the third chapter of the Data of Ethics serves to illustrate these two points and to shew that Mr Spencer is in utter confusion with regard to the fundamental principl es of Ethics. …
ellauri089.html on line 481: § 37. Hedonism may be defined as the doctrine that "Pleasure is the sole good"; this doctrine has always been held by Hedonists and used by them as a fundamental ethical principl e, although it has commonly been confused with others. …
ellauri089.html on line 489: § 41. (2) an attempt to shew that nothing but pl easure is desired. …
ellauri089.html on line 491: § 42. The theory that nothing but pl easure is desired seems largely due to a confusion between the cause and the object of desire, and, even if it is always among the causes of desire, that fact would not tempt anyone to think it a good. …
ellauri089.html on line 493: § 43. Mill attempts to reconcile his doctrine that pl easure is the sole object of desire with his admission that other things are desired, by the absurd declaration that what is a means to happiness is "a part" of happiness. …
ellauri089.html on line 497: § 45. We must now proceed to consider the principl e of Hedonism as an "Intuition", as which it has been clearly recognised by Prof. Sidgwick alone. That it should be thus incapable of proof is not, in itself, any reason for dissatisfaction. …
ellauri089.html on line 501: § 47. Mill's doctrine that some pl easures are superior "in quality" to others impl ies both (1) that judgments of ends must be "intuitions"; …
ellauri089.html on line 503: § 48. and (2) that pl easure is not the sole good. …
ellauri089.html on line 505: § 49. Prof. Sidgwick has avoided those confusions made by Mill: in considering his arguments we shall, therefore, merely consider the question "Is pl easure the sole good?"
ellauri089.html on line 509: § 51. He then goes on to the far more important proposition that no part of Human Existence, except pl easure, is desirable. …
ellauri089.html on line 511: § 52. But pl easure must be distinguished from consciousness of pl easure, and (1) it is pl ain that, when so distinguished, pl easure is not the sole good; …
ellauri089.html on line 513: § 53. and (2) it may be made equally pl ain that consciousness of pl easure is not the sole good, if we are equally careful to distinguish it from its usual accompaniments. …
ellauri089.html on line 515: § 54. Of Prof. Sidgwick's two arguments for the contrary view, the second is equally compatible with the supposition that pl easure is a mere criterion of what is right; …
ellauri089.html on line 517: § 55. and in his first, the appeal to reflective intuition, he fails to put the question clearly (1) in that he does not recognize the principl e of organic unities; …
ellauri089.html on line 521: § 57. I conclude, then, that a reflective intuition, if proper precautions are taken, will agree with Common Sense that it is absurd to regard mere consciousness of pl easure as the sole good. …
ellauri089.html on line 523: § 58. It remains to consider Egoism and Utilitarianism. It is important to distinguish the former, as the doctrine that "my own pl easure is sole good," from the doctrine, opposed to Altruism, that to pursue my own pl easure exclusively is right as a means. …
ellauri089.html on line 533: § 63. Egoism proper seems also to owe its pl ausibility to its confusion with Egoism, as a doctrine of means. …
ellauri089.html on line 544: § 67. and by "metaphysical Ethics" I mean those systems which maintain or impl y that the answer to the question "What is good?" logically depends upon the answer to the question "What is the nature of supersensible reality?" All such systems obviously involve the same fallacy—the "naturalistic fallacy"—by the use of which Naturalism was also defined. …
ellauri089.html on line 546: § 68. Metaphysics, as dealing with a "supersensible reality" may have a bearing upon practical Ethics (1) if its supersensible reality is conceived as something future, which our actions can affect; and (2) since it will prove that every proposition of practical Ethics is false, if it can shew that an eternal reality is either the only real thing or the only good thing. Most metaphysical writers, believing in a reality of the latter kind, do thus impl y the compl ete falsehood of every practical proposition, although they fail to see that their Metaphysics thus contradicts their Ethics. …
ellauri089.html on line 548: § 69. But the theory, by which I have defined Metaphysical Ethics, is not that Metaphysics has a logical bearing upon the question involved in practical Ethics "What effects will my action produce?", but that it has such a bearing upon the fundamental ethical question, "What is good in itself?" This theory has been refuted by the proof, in Chap. I, that the naturalistic fallacy is a fallacy; it only remains to discuss certain confusions which seem to have lent it pl ausibility. …
ellauri089.html on line 566: § 78. (1) It has been commonly held, since Kant, that "goodness" has the same relation to Will or Feeling, which "truth" or "reality" has to Cognition: that the proper method for Ethics is to discover what is impl ied in Will or Feeling, just as, according to Kant, the proper method for Metaphysics was to discover what is impl ied in Cognition. …
ellauri089.html on line 589: § 87. and (2) What things are good in themselves? to which we gave one answer in deciding that pl easure was not the only thing good in itself. …
ellauri089.html on line 597: § 91. (2) It is pl ain that we cannot hope to prove which among all the actions, which it is possible for us to perform on every occasion, will produce the best total results: to discover what is our "duty", in this strict sense, is impossible. It may, however, be possible to shew which among the actions, which we are likely to perform, will produce the best results. …
ellauri089.html on line 599: § 92. The distinction made in the last § is further expl ained; and it is insisted that all that Ethics has done or can do, is, not to determine absolute duties, but to point out which, among a few of the alternatives, possible under certain circumstances, will have the better result. …
ellauri089.html on line 605: § 95. But (c) most of the actions, most universally approved by Common Sense, may perhaps be shewn to be generally better as means than any probable alternative, on the following principl es. (1) With regard to some rules it may be shewn that their general observation would be useful in any state of society, where the instincts to preserve and propagate life and to possess property were as strong as they seem always to be; and this utility may be shewn, independently of a right view as to what is good in itself, since the observance is a means to things which are a necessary condition for the attainment of any great goods in considerable quantities. …
ellauri089.html on line 609: § 97. It is pl ain that rules of class (1) may also be justified by the existence of such temporary conditions as justify those of class (2); and among such temporary conditions must be reckoned the so-called sanctions. …
ellauri089.html on line 617: § 101. (4) It follows further that the distinction denoted by the terms "duty" and "expediency" is not primarily ethical; when we ask "Is this really expedient?" we are asking precisely the same question as "Is this my duty?", viz. "Is this a means to the best possible?" "Duties" are mainly distinguished by the non-ethical marks (1) that many peopl e are often tempted to avoid them, (2) that their most prominent effects are on others than the agent, (3) that they excite the moral sentiments: so far as they are distinguished by an ethical peculiarity, this is not that they are peculiarly useful to perform, but that they are peculiarly useful to sanction. …
ellauri089.html on line 625: § 105. and, if we consider the intrinsic value of each exercise, it will appear (1) that, in most cases, it has no value, and (2) that even the cases, where it has some value, are far from constituting the sole good. The truth of the latter proposition is generally inconsistently impl ied, even by those who deny it; …
ellauri089.html on line 627: § 106. but in order fairly to decide upon the intrinsic value of virtue, we must distinguish three different kinds of disposition, each of which is commonly so called and has been maintained to be the only kind deserving the name. Thus (a) the mere unconscious "habit" of performing duties, which is the commonest type, has no intrinsic value whatsoever; Christian moralists are right in impl ying that mere "external rightness" has no intrinsic value, though they are wrong in saying that it is therefore not "virtuous", since this impl ies that it has no value as a means. …
ellauri089.html on line 638: Ideaali on sana josta tulee sana idealismi, ja se ize tulee Plaatton sanasta idea, joka oli Plaatton oma idea (paizi pl agiaatti uskovaisilta). Poinzina sillä oli että aivokummituxet ovat todellisempaa kuin "ulko"maailma joka niitä aapan päässä aiheuttaa: käännä maailma pään ympärillä nurinkurin kuin villasukka niin näät, että maailma on mun mielteeni, mä on mä ja muut on meidän krannista. Älyttömin ajatus joka on koskaan narsistiseen mieleen juolahtanut, ja juolahtaa uudestaan ja uudestaan koko ajan. Kirjailijoista yli puolet on niin narsistisia että ne peukuttaa tätä ajatusta (enhän mä mitenkään voi kuolla, tai ainaskin mun meemit on kuolemattomat, lait ennen mua syntyneet jälkeheni jää, sanoi Plaatto ja oli oikeassa, valitettavasti.) Filosfofeissa on näitä oman napanöyhdän pyörittäjiä prosentuaalisesti vielä enemmän kuin muissa kynäntyöntäjissä, vaikka lukumääräisesti ehkä ei. Filosofi on kuin uskovainen pieru exyxissä.
ellauri089.html on line 648: § 114. If we begin by considering I. Aesthetic Enjoyments, it is pl ain (1) that there is always essential to these some one of a great variety of different emotions, though these emotions may have little value by themselves: …
ellauri089.html on line 660: § 120. We thus get a third essential constituent of many great goods; and in this way we are able to justify (1) the attribution of value to knowledge, over and above its value as a means, and (2) the intrinsic superiority of the proper appreciation of a real object over the appreciation of an equally valuable object of mere imagination: emotions directed towards real objects may thus, even if the object be inferior, claim equality with the highest imaginative pl easures. …
ellauri089.html on line 662: § 121. Finally (4) with regard to the objects of the cognition which is essential to these good wholes, it is the business of Aesthetics to analyse their nature: it need only be here remarked (1) that, by calling them "beautiful", we mean that they have this relation to a good whole; and (2) that they are, for the most part, themselves compl ex wholes, such that the admiring contempl ation of the whole greatly exceeds in value the sum of the values of the admiring contempl ation of the parts. …
ellauri089.html on line 674: § 127. and (3) the consciousness of intense pain: this appears to be the only thing, either greatly good or greatly evil, which does not involve both a cognition and an emotion directed towards its object; and hence it is not analogous to pl easure in respect of its intrinsic value, while it also seems not to add to the vileness of the whole, as a whole, in which it is combined with another bad thing, whereas pl easure does add to the goodness of a whole, in which it is combined with another good thing; …
ellauri089.html on line 676: § 128. but pl easure and pain are compl etely analogous in this, that pl easure by no means always increases, and pain by no means always decreases, the total value of a whole in which it is included: the converse is often true. …
ellauri089.html on line 686: § 133. Hence (1) no actually existing evil is necessary to the Ideal, (2) the contempl ation of imaginary evils is necessary to it, and (3) where evils already exist, the existence of mixed virtues has a value independent both of its consequences and of the value which it has in common with the proper appreciation of imaginary evils. …
ellauri090.html on line 28: A Panelinha play:none">Brassailua
ellauri090.html on line 68: [14.3. 9.34] Bo Egov: Outra carta justifica uma certa compl exidade no começo de seu relacionamento: "Sofreste tanto que até perdeste a consciência do teu império; estás pronta a obedecer; admiras-te de seres obedecida", o que é um mistério para os recentes estudiosos das correspondências do autor.
ellauri090.html on line 105: Following The Posthumous Memoirs of Bras Cubas (1881) and preceding Dom Casmurro (1899), this book is considered by modern critics to be the second of Machado de Assis's realist trilogy, in which the author was concerned with using pessimism and irony to criticize the customs and philosophy of his time, in the process parodying scientism, Social darwinism, and Comte's positivism, although he did not remove all Romantic elements from the pl ot.
ellauri090.html on line 107: In contrast to the earlier novel of the trilogy, Quincas Borba was written in third person, telling the story of Rubião, a naive young man who becomes a discipl e and later the heir of the titular philosopher Quincas Borba, a character in the earlier novel. While living according to the fictional "Humanitist" philosophy of Quincas Borba, Rubião befriends and is fooled by the greedy Christiano and his wife Sofia who manage to take him for his entire inheritance.
ellauri090.html on line 114: In Rio, Palha borrows money from Rubião to invest in business, and the two men become partners. Rubião also meets Carlos Maria, an arrogant young man, and Freitas, an unsuccessful middle-aged man, who expl oit Rubião for his wealth and innocence. Major Siqueira and his thirty-nine-year-old daughter, Doña Tonica, attach themselves to Rubião, hoping that Rubião will marry Doña Tonica, who meanwhile becomes jealous of Sophia.
ellauri090.html on line 147: —Bolha não tem opinião. Apparentemente, ha nada mais contristador que uma dessas terriveis pestes que devastam um ponto do globo? E, todavia, esse supposto mal é um beneficio, não só porque elimina os organismos fracos, incapazes de resistencia, como porque dá logar á observação, á descoberta da droga curativa. A hygiene é filha de podridões seculares; devemol-a a milhões de corrompidos e infectos. Nada se perde, tudo é ganho. Repito, as bolhas ficam na agua. Vês este livro? É D. Quixote. Se eu destruir o meu exempl ar, não elimino a obra, que continua eterna nos exempl ares subsistentes e nas edições posteriores. Eterna e bella, bellamente eterna, como este mundo divino e supra-divino.
ellauri090.html on line 165: Pardo (feminine parda) is a term used in the former Portuguese and Spanish colonies in the Americas to refer to the triracial descendants of Europeans, Amerindians, and West Africans. In some pl aces they were defined as neither exclusively mestizo (Amerindian-European descent), nor mulatto (West African-European descent), nor zambo (Amerindian-West African descent). In colonial Mexico, pardo "became virtually synonymous with mulatto, thereby losing much of its indigenous referencing." In the eighteenth century, pardo might have been the preferred label for blackness. Unlike negro, pardo had no association with slavery. Casta paintings from eighteenth-century Mexico use the label negro never pardo to identify Africans paired with Spaniards.
ellauri090.html on line 167: In Brazil, the word pardo has had a general meaning, since the beginning of the colonization. In the famous letter by Pêro Vaz de Caminha, for exampl e, in which Brazil was first described by the Portuguese, the Amerindians were called "pardo": "Pardo, naked, without clothing". The word has ever since been used to cover African/European mixes, South Asian/European mixes, Amerindian/European/South Asian/African mixes and Amerindians themselves.
ellauri090.html on line 177: Embora seja chamada de "realista", os críticos não deixam de notar que a riqueza de gêneros e elementos nessas obras também adere resíduos do Romantismo e impressionistas. Além disso, nessas obras Machado de Assis não compactua com o esquematismo determinista dos realistas, nem procura causas muito expl ícitas ou claras para a expl icação das suas personagens e situações.
ellauri090.html on line 179: Machado de Assis constrói um livro em que cultiva o incompl eto, o fragmentário, intervindo na narrativa para conversar diretamente com o leitor e comentar o próprio romance e suas personagens e fato.
ellauri090.html on line 202: Os críticos notam que na segunda metade do século XIX os intelectuais brasileiros interessavam-se com o "surgimento de novas ideias" como o já citado positivismo de Comte e o evolucionismo social de Spencer. Ao que tudo indica, Machado não compartilhava deste interesse e escreveu seus romances com ceticismo (skeptisesti) a estas escolas filosóficas e políticas. Em Memórias Póstumas de Brás Cubas, por exempl o, um importante aspecto do pessimismo de Brás Cubas é sua visão de que os valores são arbitrários.
ellauri090.html on line 211: Machado de Assis nasceu em 21 de junho de 1839, no Morro do Livramento, no Rio de Janeiro, então capital do Império, em pl eno Período Regencial. Seu pai foi Francisco José de Assis, um "mulato" que pintava paredes, filho de Francisco de Assis e Inácia Maria Rosa, ambos Negros e escravos alforriados.
ellauri090.html on line 215: Quando Machado tinha apenas um ano de idade, em 1840, decretava-se a maioridade de D. Pedro II, tema que viria a tratar anos mais tarde em Dom Casmurro. Ao compl etar 10 anos, Machado tornou-se órfão de mãe. Mudou-se com seu pai para São Cristóvão, na Rua São Luís de Gonzaga nº48 e logo o pai se casou com sua madrasta (äitipuoli) Maria Inês da Silva em 18 de junho de 1854. Ela cuidaria do garoto quando Francisco viesse a morrer um tempo depois.
ellauri090.html on line 282: Outra carta justifica uma certa compl exidade no começo de seu relacionamento: "Sofreste tanto que até perdeste a consciência do teu império; estás pronta a obedecer; admiras-te de seres obedecida", o que é um mistério para os recentes estudiosos das correspondências do autor.
ellauri090.html on line 310: Machado de Assis escrevia as violências impl ícitas, como a dissimulação e a falsa camaradagem na relação senhor e escravo.
ellauri090.html on line 319: e, por fim, Quincas Borba, cuja crítica mais expl ícita é ao cientificismo e à lei do mais forte e da seleção natural (muito famosa na época, por influência de Charles Darwin), através do filósofo Quincas Borba, teórico do fictício Humanitismo, onde o homem mais esperto recebe vantagem sobre o menos esperto nas sociedades.
ellauri090.html on line 329: A frase machadiana é simpl es, sem enfeites. Os períodos em geral são curtos, as palavras muito bem escolhidas e não há vocabulário difícil (alguma dificuldade que pode ter um leitor de hoje se deve ao fato de que certas palavras caíram em desuso). Mas com esses recursos limitados Machado consegue um estilo de extraordinária expressividade, com um fraseado de agilidade incomparável.
ellauri090.html on line 331: Uma das maiores características da prosa de Machado de Assis é a forma contraditória de apreensão do mundo. Machado em geral apanha o fato em suas versões antagônicas, e isso lhe dá um caráter dilemático. É também uma forma superior e mais compl eta de ver as coisas. Machado tem os olhos voltados para as contradições do mundo.
ellauri090.html on line 348: O conto "Pílades e Orestes", no entanto, é o que mais expl icitamente trata do homoerotismo.
ellauri090.html on line 383: Kanadalainen komedia (?) sarja Schitt's Creek on napannut kaikki palkinnot, Emmyn, Oskarit, Venlan, mitä niitä nyt olikaan, mitä Hoblan Malin Slotte ei voi tajuta. Sehän on kömpelösti ylinäytelty paskaturaus, trailerista päätellen, jonka "huumori" on enintään Reinikaisen tasoa. Tai Mämmilästä. "I love your compl exion" sanoo newcomer white-trash ämmä afrokanadalaiselle. Mämmilässäkin oli hassu mutta kiltti kotisomali. Mixi näin? Mistä ihmeestä voi olla kysymys?
ellauri090.html on line 420: vo mesurando a passi tardi et lenti, i campi compl etamente abbandonati käyn mittaillen hitain löysin askelin
ellauri092.html on line 34: Badman and Rubin play:none">Näkyjä
ellauri092.html on line 35: ple.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri092.html on line 46: Tässä käy aina samalla lailla kuin Neuvostoliitossa: ensin mukaan tulee kaikki työtätekevät ja sorretut, pl us puliukot ja naisväki, rupusakki on parasta vaalikarjaa herätyxille. Mutta sitten kun hommat alkaa sujua, nousee kökkäreet taas pinnalle ja entisestä matalakirkon pesästä alkaa kasvaa tuttu pyramidimainen keko. Kokoo koko koko. Koko kokoko? Koko koko. Pian uusi kupl a alkaa muodostua puuropadan pohjalla.
ellauri092.html on line 65: Dwight Lyman Moody (February 5, 1837 – December 22, 1899), also known as D. L. Moody, was an American evangelist and publisher connected with Keswickianism, who founded the Moody Church, Northfield School and Mount Hermon School in Massachusetts (now Northfield Mount Hermon School), Moody Bible Institute and Moody Publishers. One of his most famous quotes was “Faith makes all things possible... Love makes all things easy.“ Moody gave up his lucrative boot and shoe business to devote his life to revivalism, working first in the Civil War with Union troops through YMCA in the United States Christian Commission. In Chicago, he built one of the major evangelical centers in the nation, which is still active. Working with singer Ira Sankey, he toured the country and the British Isles, drawing large crowds with a dynamic speaking style. Jesus was a great motivational speaker, and the apostles pl us Paul of Tarsus copycatted him to the best of their abilities.
ellauri092.html on line 78: Dwight Lyman Moody was born into a bankrupt family of nine children with a father who loved whiskey and who died when Dwight was just four. His mother sent them to a school where he learnt very little, and she sent them to the First Congregational Church where he learnt less. His upbringing was something of a discipl ined, Puritan-influenced life.
ellauri092.html on line 82: In April 1855 young Edward Kimball a Sunday school teacher was deepl y burdened by Moody’s sole. Kimball left his house and made his way to the shoe shop where Moody worked with the intention of confronting Moody about his standing in front of Cod. A thousand contrary thoughts invaded the young man’s mind and he almost turned back. When he realized he had passed the shop he decided he would go for it and get it over with quickly. With what he later thought was a very weak pl ea with tears in his eyes he challenged Moody concerning his salivation, Cod’s tail and his need of a waist. That day in the back of the shop on his knees Moody accepted his price and Kimball returned home within minutes with new soles. Salivation while you wait.
ellauri092.html on line 84: The first change in Moody was that he received a burden to see all his family earnings saved. Later that year he moved to Chicago and although he started to show signs of real shoe business ability and success, when he experienced the revival which commenced in that city in January 1857, business success faded into insignificance. He was ruined - success of this world no longer interested him instead, he began to glow in Christian virtue. He mixed freely amongst Plymouth Brethren, Methodist Episcopal, Congregationalists and Baptists. The years passed and he worked with the men in tights at YMCA and raised up one of the most unusual Sunday Schools of that day which became a church. He reluctantly began to preach and haggled every step of the way. He turned down Congregational ordination and remained a simpl e uneducated layman with a burden for souls. Having heard of Spurgeon’s ministry in London he did all he could to get hold of and read every Spurgeon sermon. He took thorough hold of Spurgeon’s three ‘R’s: Ruin by the fall, Redemption by the Blood, and Regeneration by the Holy Mackerel. This flowed through every one of his messages and was the marrow of Moody’s theology. Many thought him too radical and so nicknamed him ‘Crazy Moody.’
ellauri092.html on line 86: When his wife Emma suffered bad asthma the doctor suggested a boat trip so Moody decided to take her to dry and airy Britain. In February 1867 they set sail for Britain for the first time. Altogether they had a thoroughly inspiring time. They visited Spurgeon’s Metropolitan Tabernacle which had a congregation of 5,000. He sat amongst the Plymouth Brethren and heard their most fervent preachers as well as preaching for them. He could preach as fervently as any tommy, if not more. He was also invited to speak at some meetings in London where his warmth won everyone’s affection while his wife coughed in the smog. He also visited Bristol to see George Muller’s work where 1,500 orphan children were provided for financially without requests for money. (The trick is familiar from Dickens' Oliver Twist.) Moody was very impressed with what Cod could accompl ish going through this meek godly man of prayer. They managed to include Dublin and France in the trip then in June they returned to America.
ellauri092.html on line 96: So in June 1873 he arrived again into Liverpool, England, accompanied by his asthmatic wife and song leader Ira Sankey as his other wife. Key men who were leaders and financers who had invited him with the promise of financial help had died since he was last there. There were no meetings, no funds and no committees. What the fuck. It seemed all was lost. Maybe they would just have to return to America? Only one unattractive invitation came from York in the North of England and so there they went. It was hard ground but in the midst of these meetings one unimpressed minister called F.B. Meyer slowly melted and then ignited with holy fervent fire. Our friends fled the scene as fast as they could. Next the Evangelistic foursome moved to Sunderland for several weeks of sole eating meetings where Cod’s power to inflate liver was manifest. In August they brought coals to Newcastle where a daily paper meeting was conducted with some 300 saints in attendance. No other lighting was necessary. News spread throughout the whole land that Creedence Clearvater Revival was coming to churches and salivation to thousands. Other towns were visited in the same manner and left as quickly as the audience caught on that a less inspiring Yankee foursome was doing the song and pl ay.
ellauri092.html on line 98: Next came the invitation to Edinburgh, Scotland. Only eternity will reveal the results of this revival which started in November, 1873. On the first night at the first meeting 2,000 peopl e had to be turned away because the tiller was already filled to capacity. By now Moody had the full backing and support of many great theologians as well as all national financiers of every occupation. It was later said that “The revival in Edinburgh was like a Holocaust to the land”. Cold Calvinism gave way to fiery evangelism. This great city was startled out of its sleep and stirred to its depths. In the New Year they travelled on to see Crocodile Dundee, Glasgow and elsewhere. This was not successful evangelism, it was Creedence Clearwater Revival live. The nine months in Scotland ended, but the revival burned on a few days. Then things returned to normal.
ellauri092.html on line 100: In September 1874 they travelled to Belfast in the North of Ireland for five weeks of meetings like those in Scotland. Then onward to Dublin for a month where several thousand pounds sterling were reported converted to dollars. These were some of the most remarkable meetings ever held in Ireland. In November they sailed for England and continued to minister in the main cities and towns. In March 1875 he moved to London to start a 4 mouth campaign. Initially meetings had about 16,000 peopl e in attendance. He bled the rich and poor, the famous and the destitute, princesses as well as paupers. It is estimated that a million and a half peopl e paid him in this chief of cities. After one very brief visit to Cambridge University he returned home to America and did not return again until 1882 when he administered snake oil in Ireland, Scotland, Wales and England.
ellauri092.html on line 102: In November 1882 when he spoke at Cambridge University he was filled with great anxiety as this educational centre for Britain’s aristocratic and wealthy youth had a reputation of unparalleled riotous behaviour. That first night at a Zoom meeting Moody spoke on ‘the Spirit’s power service.’ The university vicar Handley Moule was somewhat nervous. The young C.T. Studd (the same guy who impressed J.R.Mott with his biceps) greatly doubted ‘if this Yankee was up to the task.’ The first mission night on the Monday had 1,700 students in attendance. As Sankey sang his sacred Hymns they jeered, laughed and shouted. When Sankey finished he was near to tears. As Moody preached on Daniel in the lions den (how appropriate) again they laughed, shouted and did all in their power to disturb him. He maintained his calm. By the end of the week at least 200 students had accepted a check from the speaker. Amongst them was a main ‘ringette pl ayer’ who later assumed missionary position in China and was the first lady Bishop of King Kong. Out of this mission came The Cambridge Seven, missionaries who made a lot of dough. This campaign had huge proceeds that also leeched the youth of the whole nation.
ellauri092.html on line 153: Baptists in the South supported slavery "for economic and social reasons", although this was never admitted. Instead, it was claimed that slavery was beneficent, and endorsed in the Bible by God. However, Baptists in the North disagreed strongly, claiming that God would not "condone treating one race as superior to another". Southerners, on the other hand, held that God intended the races to be separate. Finally, around 1835, Southern states began compl aining that they were being slighted in the allocation of funds for missionary work.
ellauri092.html on line 157: In matters of sexuality, several Baptist churches are promoting the virginity pl edge to young Baptist Christians, who are invited to engage in a public ceremony at sexual abstinence until Christian marriage. This pact is often symbolized by a purity ring. Programs like True Love Waits, founded in 1993 by the Southern Baptist Convention have been developed to support the commitments.
ellauri092.html on line 159: Wikipedian luettelemat pykälät: raamatun paikkansapitävyys ja auktoriteetti, seurakunta koostuu hurahtaneista, paikallisseurakunnan itsehallinto. yleinen pappeus, kaste ja ehtoollinen, pastori ja diakoni, kirkkojen ja valtion erillisyys, yksilön sielunvapaus, on tämmöstä hallintoa vaan, Tästä kyllä puuttuu tärkein eli se uppokastelu. Muissa poinzeissa en nää eroa muitten kliseisiin. Mut mä en ole discipl e.
ellauri092.html on line 180: The First Great Awakening was a religious movement among colonials in the 1730s and 1740s. The English Calvinist Methodist preacher George Whitefield pl ayed a major role, traveling up and down the colonies and preaching in a dramatic and emotional style, accepting everyone as his audience. It was the largest denomination in 1820.
ellauri092.html on line 184: In 1914–1917 many Methodist ministers made strong pl eas for world peace. President Woodrow Wilson (a Presbyterian), promised "a war to end all wars." Tästä teki sitten pilaa italialainen nobelistirunoilija Eugenio Montale , joka on aika lailla kyllä never heard. Se oli liian hermeettinen vedotaxeen kansan makuun. Oikeastaan sen ei olis kuulunutkaan saada noobelia kerze oli pessimisti, muze oli sentään antifasisti, joista sodan aikana lie Italiassa ollut pula. Eli jälleen kerran sellanen poliittinen virkanimitys. Montale oli kantava voima runoilijaryhmässä, joka kutsui itseään Hermeettiseksi seuraksi. Ryhmä tuotti täysin epäloogisia runoja, jotka kuvastivat absurdia ajatusta Sodasta, joka päättää kaikki sodat.
ellauri092.html on line 188: In the early 20th century, many of the spl intered Methodist groups joined together to form The Methodist Church (USA). Another merger in 1968 resulted in the formation of The United Methodist Church from the Evangelical United Brethren (EUB) and the Methodist Church.While United Methodist Church in America membership has been declining, associated groups in developing countries are growing rapidly.
ellauri092.html on line 190: United Methodist elders and pastors may marry and have families. They are pl aced in congregations by their bishop. Elders and pastors can either ask for a new appointment or their church can request that they be re-appointed elsewhere. If the elder is a full-time pastor, the church is required to provide either a house or a housing allowance for the pastor.
ellauri092.html on line 194: Adding more compl exity to the mix, there are United Methodist congregations who orient their worship to the "free" church tradition, so particular liturgies are not observed. The United Methodist Book of Worship and The Hymns of the United Methodist Church are voluntarily followed in varying degrees. Such churches empl oy the liturgy and rituals therein as optional resources, but their use is not mandatory.
ellauri092.html on line 200: The pl an made it easier to enforce penalties for violating the teaching, which is part of the church´s Book of Discipl ine.[26]
ellauri092.html on line 204: Methodistishen uskon erikoispiirteitä ovat pyhitys (sanctification), uudelleensyntyminen (new birth), uskonvarmuus (assurance), hankittu vanhurskaus (imparted righteousness), täydellinen pyhitys (compl ete sanctification), laupeudenteot, raamatun ensisijaisuus mutta traditio käy, arminianismi.
ellauri092.html on line 213: Baptists, as their very name impl ies, adhere to baptism. But not just any baptism – Baptists are more specific on the issue. Baptist subscribe to credo baptism by immersion. That means that they believe in baptism of a confessing believer by immersion into water. They reject pedobaptism and other modes of baptism (sprinkling, pouring, etc.). This is one distinctive that holds true for nearly all Baptist denominations and churches. They are Baptists, after all!
ellauri092.html on line 223: Many peopl e have wondered, are baptist and methodist the same? The answer is no. However, there are some similarities. Both Baptists and Methodist are trinitarian. Both hold that the Bible is the central text in faith and practice (though groups within both the families of denominations would dispute the Bible’s authority). Both Baptists and Methodists have historically affirmed the divinity of Christ, justification by faith alone, and the reality of heaven for those who die in Christ, and eternal torment in hell for those who die unbelieving.
ellauri092.html on line 225: Historically, both Methodists and Baptists have pl aced a heavy emphasis on evangelism and missions.
ellauri092.html on line 237: Baptists make this decision entirely at the local level. Local churches usually form search committees, invite and screen appl icants, and then select one candidate to present to the church for vote. There are no denomination-wide standards for ordination in many larger Baptist denominations (such as the Southern Baptist Convention) or minimum education requirements for pastors, though most Baptist churches only hire pastors trained at the seminary level.
ellauri092.html on line 239: Major Methodist Bodies, such as the United Methodist Church, have outlined their requirements for ordination in the Book of Discipl ine, and ordination is governed by the denomination, not by local churches. Local church conferences confer with the district conference to select and hire new pastors.
ellauri092.html on line 271: William Boardman worked closely with Robert Pearsall Smith, whose wife Hannah Whitall Smith, a Quaker, became well known in the movement for her belief in “quietism”. Quietism teaches that “sinless perfection” is attainable in this life and comes from inner quietness or meditative contempl ation that is believed to allow God to work as all human effort ceases. Remind you of something today?
ellauri092.html on line 275: Though Boardman was a Presbyterian and strongly influenced by the numerous heresies of Charles Finney and others, he was not a trained theologian. In fact, it is tragic that many errors that crept into the church were introduced by peopl e who had little to no training in rightly dividing the Word. This is not to say that a person with little to no formal training cannot be used by God or that he is exempt from learning the truth of Scripture (Harry Ironsides is a good exampl e). However, there is a proper hermeneutic to be used in studying Scripture and if not appl ied, many errors can result.
ellauri092.html on line 279: As a young Christian, because of a lack of discipl eship, I was literally tossed about on various theological waves because of my emotions. Because of that I was drawn into the Charismatic Movement. Looking back now, I fully realize my error.
ellauri092.html on line 281: Keswick’s emphasis on emotion, signs and wonders gave birth to Pentecostalism, the Charismatic Movement and ultimately to today’s NAR movement, all facets of the same doctrinal errors. Moreover, today’s Contempl ative Movement is simpl y a redressing of the Quaker Quietism.
ellauri092.html on line 283: Doctrinal errors never really go away once introduced and embraced. They are simpl y renamed and recycled by Satan to a new generation. Too many leaders within Christendom think they’ve found something “new” and introduce their followers to it in books, sermons and seminars. However, they are simpl y espousing the same error that Satan tempted Eve with thousands of years ago. Vällykäärme sieltä nostaa päätään, halkinainen nuppi kurkkaa poolopaidasta. There is nothing new under the sun. It simpl y seems new to the latest generation.
ellauri092.html on line 289: Adherents of Keswickianism would agree with the above regarding justification. However, when it comes to sanctification, they move off in a different direction. They generally do not believe the Holy Mackerel comes into the person and takes up residence at salvation, but that the Holy Mackerel simpl y comes upon the person to seal them with salvation. It is later, at a time they refer to variously as the “second blessing,” or “higher living,” when they say sanctification occurs. Ultimately, their view of sanctification is flat out mysticism akin to New Age’s goal of an altered state of consciousness. This is all based on a strong (and seemingly biblical), desire to emotionally “know” God. The person turns inward to meet the felt needs of self.
ellauri092.html on line 297: But who in history have been associated with Keswick due to agreement with it? Here are just some of the more well known peopl e below
ellauri092.html on line 322: Holiness is thus not so much an abstract or mystic idea, as a regulative principl e in the everyday lives of men and women. Holiness is thus attained not by flight from the world, nor by monk-like renunciation of human relationships of family or station, but by the spirit in which we fulfill the obligations of life in its simpl est and commonest details: in this way – by doing justly, loving mercy, and walking humbly with our God in everyday life. Or laying down prostrate knickers down when the knobbly heads of the elders tell us so. Kitty loves me yes I know, cause his purring tells me so. Is that there a test tube in your pockezes, or are you just so glad to see me?
ellauri092.html on line 324: The emphasis of Keswick is that you are never holy enough. Certainly, this is true. However, I am on the path to greater holiness as God recreates within me the perfect character of His Son, which will not be compl eted until I reach eternity. This is God’s work of sanctification.
ellauri092.html on line 326: The common thread with all of the peopl e above (and others not listed), is the emphasis on mystical experiences that allegedly begin within as we quiet ourselves and wait upon God. Unfortunately, this is clearly not Scriptural because we are not to focus on our “innerspace” as New Agers do. We are to put our hand to the pl ow and look forward, not backward. This can only occur as we submit ourselves to Him (Romans 12:1-2). It really doesn’t matter if our emotions catch up with us, nor should they be used to “verify” that we are growing in the Lord. If the heart is deceitfully wicked and cannot be understood (Jeremiah 17:9), what makes us think that once we are saved, our hearts are all of a sudden able to be known?
ellauri092.html on line 332: By way of exampl e I have been married to my wonderful wife for 35 years. The day I met her, I liked her. As we dated, I fell in love with her. That “love” was largely an emotional rush based on my feelings toward her. There were times when I thought my heart would expl ode because of my “love” (emotion) for her. (Actually it was my little wiener that expl oded.) Over time that changed and my love for my wife became more solidified and did not rely on emotion.
ellauri092.html on line 338: So it is I understand the desire to know God more than we do now, but this largely will not occur until after we leave this life and see Him face to face. Christians are to grow through imitating God in the area of holiness, which means separating ourselves from the things that offend God. This requires purpose on our part and the Holy Mackerel is within us to empower us to do that. Sometimes, it simpl y requires a resounding “NO!” to the temptation.
ellauri092.html on line 342: We need to stop reaching for something that God is not giving us and simpl y live the Christian life as He outlines in His power through faith, not emotion. He will empower us but we may not feel it.
ellauri092.html on line 346: Hans von Holstin kodin keittiössä riippui astiakaapin yläkaapin päällä taulu, jossa luki: "Kristus on tämän kodin pää, näkymätön vieras joka aterialla, jokaisen keskustelun äänetön kuulija". Aika paranoidia. Rauhixen salin seinässä lukee sentään vaan appl ikoituna: Herra on uskonnollinen. Fair enough.
ellauri092.html on line 369: ploads/2020/03/To-kvinner-p%C3%A5-stranden-31.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri092.html on line 387: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/50/Iso-tietosanakirja-1958.jpg/375px-Iso-tietosanakirja-1958.jpg" />
ellauri092.html on line 397: Birthpl ace: Albany, Albany County, New York, United States
ellauri092.html on line 427: Crumbling buildings, unique peopl e, right up against the Mississippi River flood pl ain with a giant wall; this was the weirdest pl ace I’d ever been in America. Precisely every third house was burned to the ground on one street, everyone standing on both sides of another street was a dwarf, a clerk looked like a zombie. Most American cities have odd scenery. Luxora had that and weird peopl e as well!
ellauri092.html on line 521: On TRENDCELEBSNOW.COM, she is one hell of a successful Politician. She has ranked on the list of those famous peopl e who were born on July 10, 1962. She is one of the Richest Politician who was born in Finland.
ellauri093.html on line 28: Yours Faithfully is Christ play:none">Haahkanuntuvia
ellauri093.html on line 53: 7: And he saw a chariot with a coupl e of horsemen, a chariot of asses, and a chariot of camels; and he hearkened diligently with much heed:
ellauri093.html on line 55: 9: And, behold, here cometh a chariot of men, with a coupl e of horsemen. And he answered and said, Babylon is fallen, is fallen; and all the graven images of her gods he hath broken unto the ground.
ellauri093.html on line 114: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/da/Cambridge_Seven.jpg" />
ellauri093.html on line 128: For the next month, the seven toured the University campuses of England and Scotland, holding meetings for the students. Queen Victoria was pl eased to receive their booklet containing The Cambridge Seven's testimonies. The record of their departure is recorded in "The Evangelisation of the World: A Missionary Band". It became a national bestseller. Their influence extended to America where it led to the formation of Robert Wilder's Student Volunteer Movement.
ellauri093.html on line 130: The conversion and exampl e of the seven was one of the grand gestures of 19th-century missions, making them religious celebrities; as a result, their story was published as "The Evangelisation of the World" and was distributed to every YMCA and YWCA throughout the British Empire and the United States.
ellauri093.html on line 170: Francis William Newman – younger brother of Cardinal John Henry Newman; excommunicated for denying the Divinity of Christ. Mätämunista puheenollen! Eski kuzui jotakuta kardinaali Newmanixi. Tuskin sentään änkyttävä fonologi Martti Nyman? Ei ainakaan kaljupäinen psykologi Göte Nyman. Se oli joku filosofinpl anttu jonka olen autuaasti unohtanut.
ellauri093.html on line 178: At a time when Britain was in need of morale-boosting generalship, Wingate attracted British Prime Minister Winston Churchill's attention with a self-reliant aggressive philosophy of war, and was given resources to stage a large-scale operation. The last Chindit campaign may have determined the outcome of the Battle of Kohima, although the offensive into India by the Japanese may have occurred because Wingate's first operation had demonstrated the possibility of moving through the jungle. In practice, both Japanese and British forces suffered severe suppl y problems and malnutrition.
ellauri093.html on line 186: Field Marshal Montgomery told Moshe Dayan in 1966 that he considered Wingate to have "been mentally unbalanced and that the best thing he ever did was to get killed in a pl ane crash in 1944."
ellauri093.html on line 199: Henry K. Carroll performed an analysis of United States census data in 1912 to assign Roman numerals to various Brethren groups. For exampl e, Brethren III is also known as the Lowe Brethren and the Elberfeld Brethren. Carroll's initial findings listed four sub-groups, identified as Brethren I-IV, but he expanded the number six and then to eight; Arthur Carl Piepkorn expanded the number to ten. Those who have attempted to trace the realignments of the Plymouth Brethren include Ian McDowell and Massimo Introvigne. The compl exity of the Brethren's history is evident in charts by McDowell and Ian McKay.
ellauri093.html on line 201: Brethren assemblies (as their gatherings are most often called; everybody is supposed to speak in assembly languages) are divided into the Open Brethren and the Exclusive Brethren, following a schism that took pl ace in 1848. Both of these main branches are themselves divided into several smaller branches, with varying degrees of communication and overlap among them. (The general category "Exclusive Brethren" has been confused in the media with a much smaller group known as the Plymouth Brethren Christian Church (PBCC) or the Raven-Taylor-Hales Brethren, numbering only around 40,000 worldwide.)
ellauri093.html on line 203: The best-known and oldest distinction between Open and Exclusive assemblies is in the nature of relationships among their local churches. Open Brethren assemblies function as networks of like-minded independent local churches. Exclusive Brethren generally feel an obligation to recognize and adhere to the discipl inary actions of other associated assemblies.
ellauri093.html on line 205: Conversely, Open assemblies aware of that discipl ining would not automatically feel a binding obligation to support it, treating each case on its own merit. Reasons for being put under discipl ine by both the Open and Exclusive Brethren include disseminating gross Scriptural or doctrinal error or being involved in unscriptural behavior. Being accused of illegal financial dealings may also result in being put under discipl ine.
ellauri093.html on line 217: One of the most defining elements of the Brethren is the rejection of the concept of clergy. Their view is that all Christians are ordained by God to serve and therefore all are ministers, in keeping with the doctrine of the priesthood of all believers. The Brethren embrace the most extensive form of that idea, in that there is no ordained or unordained person or group empl oyed to function as minister(s) or pastors. Brethren assemblies are led by the local church eiders (fig. 1) within any fellowship.
ellauri093.html on line 270: When choosing an age to define ‘older’ peopl e, 65 years is commonly used, however different state and commonwealth programs may have differing age eligibility criteria. Organisations may also have their own age-related criteria. For exampl e, at Seniors Rights Victoria we work with Victorians aged 60 and over and Indigenous Victorians aged 45 and over.
ellauri093.html on line 286: Self neglect includes behaviour such as poor hygiene, excessive quacking and compulsive hoarding. Older peopl e have the right to make their own lifestyle choices, even if those choices put them at risk of harm. Scrooge McDuck has a license for his money bin, though it exposes him to the Beagle Boys.
ellauri093.html on line 288: Self-neglect must be considered eider abuse, in fact it is doubly so. It can be enhanced with help of a trusted person. For exampl e, an older person may neglect their own needs due to low self-esteem or stress provided by a support person’s abrasive behaviour.
ellauri093.html on line 302: Exampl es of eider abuse
ellauri093.html on line 304: She removed Stranleigh’s coat with a dexterity that aroused his imagination. The eider woman returned with skimpy dressings and a sponge, which she pl aced on a chair. Carry your head along as your eiders have done. After being a member of the Church for a while, Bill was ordained to the office of an eider. Jack had been an eider for only a few days when he received a new calling whistle. The eiders are coming over for dinner tonight. One of the long-time leaders in the Church is Eider Pennypacker.
ellauri093.html on line 313: Therefore, there is no formal ordination process for those who preach, teach, or lead within their meetings. Males who become eiders have been given the blessing of performing leadership tasks by older eider males. Females need not appl y. They do duty as eiderdown mattresses and blankets.
ellauri093.html on line 317: The Open Brethren believe in a pl urality of eiders (Acts 14:23; 15:6,23; 20:17; Philippians 1:1), men meeting the Biblical qualifications found in 1 Timothy 3:1–7 and Titus 1:6–9. This position is also taken in some Baptist churches, especially Reformed Baptists, and by the Churches of Christ. It is understood that eiders are appointed by the Holy Spirit (Acts 20:28) and are recognised as meeting the qualifications by the assembly and by previously existing eiders. Generally, the eiders themselves will look out for men who meet the biblical qualifications, and invite them to join them as eiders. In some Open assemblies, eiders are elected democratically, but this is a fairly recent development and is still relatively uncommon.
ellauri093.html on line 321: The term "Eider" is based on the same Scriptures that are used to identify "Bishops" and "Overseers" in other Christian circles, and some Exclusive Brethren claim that the system of recognition of eiders by the assembly means that the Open Brethren cannot claim full adherence to the doctrine of the priesthood of all believers.[27] Open Brethren consider, however, that this reveals a mistaken understanding of the priesthood of all believers which, in the Assemblies, has to do with the ability to directly offer worship to God and His Christ at the Lord's Supper, whether silently or audibly, without any human mediator being necessary—which is in accordance with 1 Timothy 2:5, where it is stated that Christ Jesus Himself is the sole Mediator between God and men ("men" being used here generically of mankind, and not referring simpl y and solely to "males").
ellauri093.html on line 323: The Plymouth Brethren Christian Church, the most hardline of all the Exclusive Brethren groups, has developed into a de facto hierarchical body which operates under the headship of an Elect Vessel, currently Bruce Hales of Australia. Some defectors have accused him and his predecessors of having quasi-papal authority. This development is almost universally considered by other streams of the Plymouth Brethren movement, however, as a radical departure from Brethren principl es.
ellauri093.html on line 329: Although this title is not found among the more traditional of those appl ied to our Lady, the word vessel, 'Sacred" vessel of all mysteries', 'Vessel of honour', 'Spiritual vessel', 'Singular vessel of devotion', appears in both ancient and more recent devotional expression, for exampl e in the Litany of Loreto. Heikompi astia. Eräänlainen suppilo tai pullo. Our Father…Hail Mary… and Glory Be…
ellauri093.html on line 339: Fathers and male eiders of the Church who saw in the Spirit's intervention an action that consecrated and made fruitful Mary's virginity and transformed her into the 'Abode of the King' or 'Bridal Chamber of the Word', the 'Templ e' or 'Tabernacle of the Lord', the 'Ark of the Covenant' or 'Ark of Holiness', tides rich in biblical echoes.
ellauri093.html on line 361: ploads/2016/10/KarlPovlsen_grey.jpg" width="15%" />
ellauri093.html on line 364: Som alle unge grundtvigske teologer på den tid ønskede også P. at blive valgmenighedspræst, og det lykkedes da han 1883 blev Birkedals medhjælper og 1885 – da alder og politisk spl id i menigheden tvang Birkedal bort – hans efterfølger, en stilling han beholdt til sin død.
ellauri093.html on line 428: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c1/Albert_Edelfelt_-_Christ_and_Mary_Magdalene%2C_a_Finnish_Legend_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg/800px-Albert_Edelfelt_-_Christ_and_Mary_Magdalene%2C_a_Finnish_Legend_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri093.html on line 429: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5a/Fritz_von_Uhde_-_Weib%2C_warum_weinest_du_(1892-94).jpg/449px-Fritz_von_Uhde_-_Weib%2C_warum_weinest_du_(1892-94).jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri093.html on line 736: Se on kyllä eittämättä totta että ne on aivan hirveen kotiinpäinvetäviä, toi pyhyyshän ei ole, kuten on moneen kertaan todettu, muuta kuin apinoiden pl aneetan meemireviiri. Ne tykkää nokintajärjestyxistä ja palvoo into piukeena alfasusia. Karsas jumala vahtii muumimukejaan ja laskee niitä, ei kai mikään niistä puutu, vai onko varas käynyt yöllä ja vienyt karsinasta karizan? Tit for tat, anna jumalalle niin se antaa sulle ja maxaa vielä korkoa. Luotathan?
ellauri093.html on line 882: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri093.html on line 907: The Jewish form of worship is well worthy of the study of Christian theologians. It is not the object of this book. It contains only simpl e heart-to-heart talks to God's children about our precious Redeemer and how we can follow and serve Him best in our daily lives.
ellauri093.html on line 909: The above words came fresh in my mind in writing. They were often used by my beloved father, when he led his children to the throne of grace in family worship. If they find an echo in the hearts of the readers I shall be deepl y thankful.
ellauri094.html on line 28: Saukki ja siipioravat play:none">Papanoita
ellauri094.html on line 94: Syreeni suggests that the letters of John - written after the predecessor gospels but before the final edition - reveal a schism in the Johannine community that was caused by the majority faction's acceptance of Jesus' death and resurrection, as it was then recorded in the new gospel. By expl oring the gospel's different means of legitimizing the passion story, such as the creation of the 'Beloved Discipl e' to witness Jesus' passion, and the foreshadowing of the resurrection of Jesus in the miracle of Lazarus, Syreeni provides a bold and provocative case for a new understanding of John.
ellauri094.html on line 166: Jos joku ihminen ajattelee näin, en missään nimessä tuomitse, mutta arvoliberalismi sinänsä on hyvin vaarallinen, koska siinä arvot eivät enää paina mitään. Yksi suurimpia arvoja, joita voin kuvitellakaan, on kristilliset arvot, jotka ottavat huomioon lähimmäisen ihmisen, lähimmäisenrakkauden ja toisen auttamisen ja yleensä sen viestin, mikä tässä pahassa maailmassa on tarpeen. Siksi suren tätä keskustelua, että Suomi on ajautunut tähän tilanteeseen. Heikoilla voimillani en tätä pysty estämään, mutta omalta osaltani parhaani teen, että tulevaisuudessa pidetään ääntä näiden oikeiden arvojen puolesta ja myös sen, että lähimmäistä ja heikompaa autetaan. Tänne tullessani annoin kaxikymppiä syrjäytyneelle, jonka viinipullo oli autosta nostettaessa särkynyt. Sillä saa kaxikin putelia kyykkyviiniä. Baabelin paperiseppä takoi Israelin kansalle 10 sukupolven tuomion, meidän herra isoherra alensi sen tupl aan. Diesel-kurssi varttihulluille. Tuli tukkualennus. Mä oon samassa asemassa, täytyy ajatella omaa perhettä.
ellauri094.html on line 184: Algolagnia (/ælɡəˈlæɡniə/; from Greek: ἄλγος, álgos, "pain", and Greek: λαγνεία, lagneía, "lust") is a sexual tendency which is defined by deriving sexual pl easure and stimulation from physical pain, often involving an erogenous zone. Studies conducted indicate differences in how the brains of those with algolagnia interpret nerve input.
ellauri094.html on line 205: The Babylonian captivity or Babylonian exile is the period in Jewish history during which a number of peopl e from the ancient Kingdom of Judah were captives in Babylon, the capital of the Neo-Babylonian Empire.
ellauri094.html on line 209: After the fall of Babylon to the Persian king Cyrus the Great in 539 BCE, exiled Judeans were permitted to return to Judah. According to the biblical book of Ezra, construction of the Second Templ e in Jerusalem began around 537 BCE. All these events are considered significant in Jewish history and culture, and had a far-reaching impact on the development of Judaism.
ellauri094.html on line 213: Nebuchadnezzar's siege of Jerusalem, his capture of King Jeconiah, his appointment of Zedekiah in his pl ace, and the pl undering of the city in 597 BCE are corroborated by a passage in the Babylonian Chronicles, p.293.
ellauri094.html on line 223: The Cyrus Cylinder (not to be confused with Joakim von Anka´s cylinder hat), an ancient tablet on which is written a declaration in the name of Cyrus referring to restoration of templ es and repatriation of exiled peopl es, has often been taken as corroboration of the authenticity of the biblical decrees attributed to Cyrus, but other scholars point out that the cylinder's text is specific to Babylon and Mesopotamia and makes no mention of Judah or Jerusalem. Professor Lester L. Grabbe asserted that the "alleged decree of Cyrus" regarding Judah, "cannot be considered authentic", but that there was a "general policy of allowing deportees to return and to re-establish cult sites". He also stated that archaeology suggests that the return was a "trickle" taking pl ace over decades, rather than a single event.
ellauri094.html on line 225: As part of the Persian Empire, the former Kingdom of Judah became the province of Judah (Yehud Medinata) with different borders, covering a smaller territory. The population of the province was greatly reduced from that of the kingdom, archaeological surveys showing a population of around 30,000 peopl e in the 5th to 4th centuries BCE.
ellauri094.html on line 227: A 2017 exhibition in Jerusalem displ ayed over 100 cuneiform tablets detailing trade in fruits and other commodities, taxes, debts, and credits accumulated between Jews driven from, or convinced to move from Jerusalem by King Nebuchadnezzar around 600 BCE. The tablets included details on one exiled Judean family over four generations, all with Hebrew names.
ellauri094.html on line 229: The exilic period was a rich one for Hebrew literature. Biblical depictions of the exile include Book of Jeremiah 39–43 (which saw the exile as a lost opportunity); the final section of 2 Kings (which portrays it as the temporary end of history); 2 Chronicles (in which the exile is the "Sabbath of the land"); and the opening chapters of Ezra, which records its end. Other works from or about the exile include the stories in Daniel 1–6, Susanna, Bel and the Dragon, the "Story of the Three Youths" (1 Esdras 3:1–5:6), and the books of Tobit and Book of Judith. The Book of Lamentations arose from the Babylonian captivity. The final redaction of the Pentateuch took pl ace in the Persian period following the exile,:310and the Priestly source, one of its main sources, is primarily a product of the post-exilic period when the former Kingdom of Judah had become the Persian province of Yehud.
ellauri094.html on line 231: In the Hebrew Bible, the captivity in Babylon is presented as a punishment for idolatry and disobedience to Yahweh in a similar way to the presentation of Israelite slavery in Egypt followed by deliverance. The Babylonian Captivity had a number of serious effects on Judaism and Jewish culture. For exampl e, the current Hebrew alphabet was adopted during this period, repl acing the Paleo-Hebrew alphabet.
ellauri094.html on line 233: This period saw the last high point of biblical prophecy in the person of Ezekiel, followed by the emergence of the central role of the Torah in Jewish life. According to many historical-critical scholars, the Torah was redacted during this time, and began to be regarded as the authoritative text for Jews. This period saw their transformation into an ethno-religious group who could survive without a central Templ e. Israeli philosopher and Biblical scholar Yehezkel Kaufmann said “The exile is the watershed. With the exile, the religion of Israel comes to an end and Judaism begins.”
ellauri094.html on line 235: This process coincided with the emergence of scribes and sages as Jewish leaders (see Ezra). Prior to exile, the peopl e of Israel had been organized according to tribe. Afterwards, they were organized by smaller family groups. Only the tribe of Levi continued in its templ e role after the return. After this time, there were always sizable numbers of Jews living outside Eretz Israel; thus, it also marks the beginning of the "Jewish diaspora", unless this is considered to have begun with the Assyrian captivity of Israel.
ellauri094.html on line 237: In Rabbinic literature, Babylon was one of a number of metaphors for the Jewish diaspora. Most frequently the term "Babylon" meant the diaspora prior to the destruction of the Second Templ e. The post-destruction term for the Jewish Diaspora was "Rome", or "Edom".
ellauri094.html on line 255: Reign of Jehoiakim (succeeded Jehoahaz , who repl aced Josiah but reigned only 3 months) Began giving tribute to Nebuchadnezzar in 605 BCE. First deportation, purportedly including Daniel .
ellauri094.html on line 275: Siege and fall of Jerusalem . ple" title="Solomon's Templ e">Solomon's Templ e destroyed. Third deportation July/August 587
ellauri094.html on line 300: Return by many Jews to Yehud under Zerubbabel and Joshua the High Priest. Foundations of ple" title="Second Templ e">Second Templ e laid
ellauri094.html on line 318: God has a funny way of treating his “chosen peopl e.” Apparently, the Jews were misbehaving and being ungodly. After several years of some other shenanigans in Babylon, god decided it was time to put his foot down and end the free will of the king by having him take the Jewish peopl e captive. This was in ca. 597 BCE. First I’d like to ask the following questions: Shouldn’t god have known that his “chosen peopl e” were going to act like brats? Couldn’t he have chosen a better, more well-behaved group of peopl e to whom to deliver his word? Anyway, moving on.
ellauri094.html on line 322: In Jeremiah it is foretold that the Jews will not be able to leave Babylon for 70 years. That’s a fairly long time. It’s an almost guaranteed life sentence for most peopl e.
ellauri094.html on line 344: “For thus says the Lord, ‘When seventy years have been compl eted for Babylon, I will visit you and fulfill My good word to you, to bring you back to this pl ace.” (Jeremiah 29:10)
ellauri094.html on line 354: One should be skeptical of whether this is a Bible contradiction given the Skeptic Annotated Bible’s track record of inaccurately handling the Bible. See the many exampl es of their error which we have responded to in this post: Collection of Posts Responding to Bible Contradictions . Of course that does not take away the need to respond to this claim of a contradiction, which is what the remainder of this post will do. But this observation should caution us to slow down and look more closely at the passages cited by the Skeptic Annotated Bible to see if they interpreted the passages properly to support their conclusion that it is a Bible contradiction.
ellauri094.html on line 375: A Jewish generation was about 30 years and if you think of 7 generations that is about 210 years. (If they started breeding at 10 then it would be just 70, so no contradiction! Muhammed's fifth wife was 9.) The exile from Jerusalem began in 586 BC. So 210 years later it would land on 376 BC. But way before then the Jews have already made big caravan trips back to Jerusalem which took pl ace in the 6th to 5th Century BC (see the book of Ezra and Nehemiah). There’s no specific migration that stood out in the 300s BC.
ellauri094.html on line 378: We shouldn’t miss that worldviews are at pl ay even with the skeptic’s objection to Christianity. The worldview of the author of the Skeptic Annotated Bible actually doesn’t even allow for such a thing as the law of non-contradiction to be meaningful and intelligible. In other words for him to try to disprove the Bible by pointing out that there’s a Bible contradiction doesn’t even make sense within his own worldview. Check out our post “Skeptic Annotated Bible Author’s Self-Defeating Worldview.” Read also Stanford's bit on contradictory beliefs here. Lisää aiheesta:
ellauri094.html on line 391: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/31/Eduard_Bendemann-_Die_trauernden_Juden_im_Exil_um_1832.jpg/800px-Eduard_Bendemann-_Die_trauernden_Juden_im_Exil_um_1832.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri094.html on line 444: VIDEO
ellauri094.html on line 475: There we sat down (You hear the peopl e cry) Siel kyykisteltiin joo (Jengi spiidaa kuuluuko)
ellauri094.html on line 483: ploads/sk/files/vanhat/library/images/Ben%20Zyskowicz%20261008.jpg" />
ellauri094.html on line 502: And thy spirit upl ifted thee to forget thy wrong Ja sun pirtu kohotti sut unohtamaan vääryydet
ellauri094.html on line 532: And with love-locks vine-chapl eted, and with rose-crowned heads Tukat käkkärällä, ihan takussa, päät punasina,
ellauri094.html on line 654: The body of Algernon Charles Swinburne’s poetry is so vast and varied that it is difficult to generalize about it. Swinburne wrote poetry for more than sixty years, and in that time he treated an enormous variety of subjects and empl oyed many poetic forms and meters. He wrote English and Italian sonnets, elegies, odes, lyrics, dramatic monologues, ballads, and romances; and he experimented with the rondeau, the ballade, and the sestina. Much of this poetry is marked by a strong lyricism and a self-conscious, formal use of such rhetorical devices as alliteration, assonance, repetition, personification, and synecdoche. Swinburne’s brilliant self-parody, “Nephilidia,” hardly exaggerates the excessive rhetoric of some of his earlier poems. The early A Song of Italy would have more effectively conveyed its extreme republican sentiments had it been more restrained. As it is, content is too often lost in verbiage, leading a reviewer for The Athenaeum to remark that “hardly any literary bantling has been shrouded in a thicker veil of indefinite phrases.” A favorite technique of Swinburne is to reiterate a poem’s theme in a profusion of changing images until a clear line of development is lost. “The Triumph of Time” is an exampl e. Here the stanzas can be rearranged without loss of effect. This poem does not so much develop as accrete. Clearly a large part of its greatness rests in its music. As much as any other poet, Swinburne needs to be read aloud. The diffuse lyricism of Swinburne is the opposite of the closely knit structures of John Donne and is akin to the poetry of Walt Whitman.
ellauri094.html on line 696: The literary device anadipl osis is detected in two or more neighboring lines. The word/phrase loved connects the lines.
ellauri094.html on line 698: If you write a school or university poetry essay, you should include in your expl anation of the poem:
ellauri094.html on line 713: Pay attention: the program cannot take into account all the numerous nuances of poetic technique while analyzing. We make no warranties of any kind, express or impl ied, about the compl eteness, accuracy, reliability and suitability with respect to the information.
ellauri094.html on line 723: Exampl es of evil are the Nazi Germany and Imperial Japan.
ellauri094.html on line 733: What I mean is that dipl omacy never works with genocidal maniacs and that the use of lethal force in self defense is ethical.
ellauri094.html on line 751: Evil ideas need to be fought. That’s not the same as exterminating the peopl e who are tricked by them.
ellauri094.html on line 758: And the stark evil of the atheist Communists becomes even more stark when considering the fact that Nazi Germany and Imperial Japan were fighting for what most wars are fought for: Wealth and Empire. Which is A-OK. The Israeli did the same with the help of Jehovah. The atheist regimes slaughtered their own peopl e simpl y to impose their will upon their less powerful compatriots. Which the Christians never do. Well, not nearly as many got killed anyway. I guess. Haven't really toted up all the Christian wars. The colonial ones too, and the U.S. neocolonial ones like Korea and Vietnam, or the Desert Storm. Should one use the absolute body count or percentages? Ethics is not an exact science after all. It's more like economics.
ellauri094.html on line 760: Almost all atheists believe in Marxism and have a thought process that is so uniform as to appear like a mass produced. Prayer is what human beings do. Homo Orate (or was it Anate? oh well), man who prays, prays 24/7, 365.25. But man of all creatures, is born and lives compl etely unaware of nature (as taught by religion). Jesus, Son of God, gave us the Lord’s Prayer, which is a short, convenient prayer, easier to mass produce than a Ford. But in order to benefit from prayer, the man must pursue excellence in prayer.
ellauri095.html on line 27: Go fly a Kestrel play:none">Leijailua
ellauri095.html on line 51: Hopkins’s most famous Welsh sonnet, “The Windhover,” reveals that for him this Book of Nature, like the Bible, demanded a moral appl ication to the self. Hopkins wrote in his notes on St. Ignatius: “This world is word, expression, news of God”; “it is a book he has written.... a poem of beauty: what is it about? His praise, the reverence due to him, the way to serve him.... Do I then do it? Never mind others now nor the race of man: DO I DO IT?” One of Hopkins’s attempts to answer that question is “The Windhover.”
ellauri095.html on line 53: The initial “I” focuses attention on the speaker, but the expl icit appl ication of the lesson of the Book of Nature to him does not begin until the line “My heart in hiding/stirred for a bird” at the conclusion of the octet. One biographical interpretation of this line is that he was hiding from fulfilling his ambitions to be a great painter and poet. Instead of ostentatiously pursuing fame in that way, wearing his heart on his sleeve, he had chosen to be the “hidden man of the heart” (1 Peter 3:4), quietly pursuing the imitation of Christ. As Hopkins put it, Christ’s “hidden life at Nazareth is the great help to faith for us who must live more or less an obscure, constrained, and unsuccessful life.”
ellauri095.html on line 57: The words “here/Buckle” which open the sestet mean “here in my heart,” therefore, as well as here in the bird and here in Jesus. Hopkins’s heart-in-hiding, Christ’s prey, sensed Him diving down to seize it for his own. Just as the bird buckled its wings together and thereby buckled its “brute beauty” and “valour”and capacity to “act,” so the speaker responds by buckling together all his considerable talents and renewing his commitment to the imitation of Christ in order to buckle down, buckle to, in serious preparation for the combat, the grappl ing, the buckling with the enemy. As Paul said, “Put on the whole armour of God, that ye may be able to stand against the wiles of the Devil.”
ellauri095.html on line 68: dom of daylight's dauphin, dappl e-dawn-drawn Falcon, in his riding rinkokunnan prinssin, Millennium Falconilla razastavan,
ellauri095.html on line 70: High there, how he rung upon the rein of a wimpl ing wing korkealla, kyllä se vetikin siipilaivan ohjista
ellauri095.html on line 75: Brute beauty and valour and act, oh, air, pride, pl ume, here Raakaa suloa ja pätevää menoa, oi, ilmaa ja sulkia,
ellauri095.html on line 79: No wonder of it: shéer pl ód makes pl ough down sillion Ei ihmekään! pelkkä auran pukerrus alas hiesuun saa sen
ellauri095.html on line 86: Gerard Manley Hopkins SJ (28 July 1844 – 8 June 1889) was an English poet and Jesuit priest, whose posthumous fame established him among the leading Victorian poets. His manipulation of prosody – particularly his concept of sprung rhythm – established him as an innovative writer of verse, as did his technique of praising God through vivid use of imagery and nature. Only after his death did Robert Bridges begin to publish a few of Hopkins's mature poems in anthologies, hoping to prepare the way for wider acceptance of his style. By 1930 his work was recognised as one of the most original literary accompl ishments of his century. It had a marked influence on such leading 20th-century poets as T. S. Eliot, Dylan Thomas, W. H. Auden, Stephen Spender and Cecil Day-Lewis.
ellauri095.html on line 89: Pluto on minipl aneetta joka heiluttaa häntää Uranuxelle vaikka vaappuu eri radalla.
ellauri095.html on line 90: Ei pysy ekliptikassa kuten kunnon pl aneetat. Elliptinen pyrstötähti pl aneettojen leikkipaikalla.
ellauri095.html on line 95: Pluton löytäjä oli loukkaantunut kun Pluto alennettiin myöhemmin minipl aneetaxi.
ellauri095.html on line 117: As a poet, Hopkins's father published works including A Philosopher's Stone and Other Poems (1843), Pietas Metrica (1849), and Spicelegium Poeticum, A Gathering of Verses by Manley Hopkins (1892). He reviewed poetry for The Times and wrote one novel. Catherine (Smith) Hopkins was the daughter of a London physician, particularly fond of music and of reading, especially German philosophy, literature and the novels of Dickens. Both parents were deepl y religious high-church Anglicans. Catherine's sister, Maria Smith Giberne, taught her nephew Gerard to sketch. The interest was supported by his uncle, Edward Smith, his great-uncle Richard James Lane, a professional artist, and other family members.
ellauri095.html on line 121: By 1930 his work was recognised as one of the most original literary accompl ishments of his century. It had a marked influence on such leading 20th-century poets as T. S. Eliot, Dylan Thomas, W. H. Auden, Stephen Spender and Cecil Day-Lewis.
ellauri095.html on line 125: Manley Hopkins moved his family to Hampstead in 1852, near where John Keats had lived 30 years before and close to the green spaces of Hampstead Heath. When he was ten years old, Gerard was sent to board at Highgate School (1854–1863). While studying Keats´s poetry, he wrote "The Escorial" (1860), his earliest extant poem. Here he practised early attempts at asceticism. He once argued that most peopl e drank more liquids than they really needed and bet that he could go without drinking for a week. He persisted until his tongue was black and he collapsed at drill. On another occasion he abstained from salt for a week.
ellauri095.html on line 137: In life and poetry he was serious and pl ayful – even whimsical. Spiritually, despite an early scrupulosity which he never fully lost, he followed the Jesuit way of finding God in all things, and rejoiced in “God in the world”: “The world is charged wíth the grándeur of God.” He was very, very bright, with an extensive knowledge of words and languages — he knew so many words ! His intellectual hero was the medieval philosopher Duns Scotus, whose philosophy of selfhood he held dear. Hopkins himself had a strong sense of self, appreciated his own individuality, and was immensely self-confident.
ellauri095.html on line 141: "Thou Art Indeed Just, Lord" (1889) echoes Jeremiah 12:1 in asking why the wicked prosper. It reflects the exasperation of a faithful servant who feels he has been neglected, and is addressed to a divine person ("Sir") capable of hearing the compl aint, but seemingly unwilling to listen. Hopkins uses parched roots as a metaphor for despair.
ellauri095.html on line 153: Despite Hopkins burning all his poems on entering the Jesuit novitiate, he had already sent some to Bridges, who with some other friends, was one of the few peopl e to see many of them for some years. After Hopkins's death they were distributed to a wider audience, mostly fellow poets, and in 1918 Bridges, by then poet laureate, published a collected edition; an expanded edition, prepared by Charles Williams, appeared in 1930, and a greatly expanded edition by William Henry Gardner appeared in 1948 (eventually reaching a fourth edition, 1967, with N. H. Mackenzie).
ellauri095.html on line 163: Robert Martin asserts that when Hopkins first met Dolben, on Dolben´s 17th birthday in Oxford in February 1865, it "was, quite simpl y, the most momentous emotional event of his undergraduate years, probably of his entire life." According to Robert Martin, "Hopkins was compl etely taken with Dolben, who was nearly four years his junior, and his private journal for confessions the following year proves how absorbed he was in imperfectly suppressed erotic thoughts of him." Martin also considers it "probable that Hopkins would have been deepl y shocked at real sexual intimacy with another guy."
ellauri095.html on line 167: Hopkins composed two poems about Dolben, "Where art thou friend" and "The Beginning of the End". Robert Bridges, who edited the first edition of Dolben's poems as well as Hopkins's, cautioned that the second poem "must never be printed," though Bridges himself included it in the first edition (1918). Another indication of the nature of his feelings for Dolben is that Hopkins's high Anglican confessor seems to have forbidden him to have any contact with Dolben except by letter. Hopkins never saw Dolben again after the latter's short visit to Oxford during which they met, and any continuation of their relationship was abruptly ended by Dolben's drowning two years later in June 1867. Hopkins's feeling for Dolben seems to have cooled by that time, but he was nonetheless greatly affected by his death. "Ironically, fate may have bestowed more through Dolben's death than it could ever have bestowed through longer life ... for many of Hopkins's best poems – impregnated with an elegiac longing for Dolben, his lost beloved and his muse – were the result." Hopkins's relationship with Dolben is expl ored in the novel The Hopkins Conundrum.
ellauri095.html on line 176: Another 1997 study from pro-homosexual researchers who were trying defend homosexuals, examined data of AIDS deaths between 1987 to 1992 in Toronto, and found that the life expectancy for the homosexual men was 8 to 20 years lower than heterosexuals. See also Atheism and life expectancy. Religious peopl e live on average four years longer than their agnostic and atheist peers, new research has found. Actually, the atheists´ life expectancy is way lower than true believers´ (estimated at about one infinity). Source: Conservopedia.
ellauri095.html on line 180: It is essential to note that the life expectancy of any population is a descriptive and not a prescriptive mesaure. Death is a product of the way a person lives and what physical and environmental hazards he or she faces everyday. It cannot be attributed solely to their sexual orientation or any other ethnic or social factor. If estimates of an individual gay and bisexual man´s risk of death is truly needed for "legal or other" purposes, then peopl e making these estimates should use the same actuarial tables that are used for all other males in that population. Gay and bisexual men are included in the construction of official population-based tables and therefore these tables for all males are the appropriate ones to be used. (LOL sorry boys, the cat is out of the bag, there is no way to get it to go back in.)
ellauri095.html on line 182: The language of Hopkins´s poems is often striking. His imagery can be simpl e, as in Heaven-Haven, where the comparison is between a nun entering a convent and a ship entering a harbour out of a storm. It can be spl endidly metaphysical and intricate, as it is in As Kingfishers Catch Fire, where he leaps from one image to another to show how each thing expresses its own uniqueness, and how divinity reflects itself through all of them.
ellauri095.html on line 186: He uses many archaic and dialect words but also coins new words. One exampl e of this is twindles, which seems from its context in Inversnaid to mean a combination of twines and dwindles. He often creates compound adjectives, sometimes with a hyphen (such as dappl e-dawn-drawn falcon) but often without, as in rolling level underneath him steady air. This use of compound adjectives, similar to the Old English use of compounds nouns, concentrates his images, communicating to his readers the instress of the poet´s perceptions of an inkscape.
ellauri095.html on line 198: The meaning of “inscape,” that conundrum of Hopkins’s readers. A common misconception of the word is that it signifies simpl y a unique particular, the unusual feature, the singular appearance.
ellauri095.html on line 207: Nevertheless, even after he became a Jesuit he continued to cultivate an acquaintance with the visual arts through drawing and attendance at exhibitions, and this lifelong attraction to the visual arts affected the verbal art for which he is remembered. In his early poetry and in his journals wordpainting is pervasive, and there is a recurrent Keatsian straining after the stasis of the pl astic arts.
ellauri095.html on line 209: The typical Hopkins drawing is what Ruskin called the “outline drawing”; as Ruskin put it, “without any wash of colour, such an outline is the most valuable of all means for obtaining such memoranda of any scene as may expl ain to another person, or record for yourself, what is most important in its features.” Many such practical purposes for drawing were advanced by Ruskin, but his ultimate purpose was to unite science, art, and religion.
ellauri095.html on line 211: Plastiikkista taidetta. Ei pl asua vaan MUOVIA! huusi Lauri Hakulinen Kuusitien parvekkeelta. Auli Hakulinen asuu Susitiellä. Mänli Sr muutti Hampstead Heathiin puiden takia. Puusta tehdään nytte puukomposiittia sekoittamalla siihen muovia. Ällöä.
ellauri095.html on line 220: The brilliant student who had left Oxford with first-class honours failed his final theology exam. This almost certainly meant that despite his ordination in 1877, Hopkins would not progress in the order. In 1877 he wrote God's Grandeur, an array of sonnets that included "The Starlight Night". He finished "The Windhover" only a few months before his ordination. His life as a Jesuit trainee, though rigorous, isolated and sometimes unpl easant, at least had some stability; the uncertain and varied work after ordination was even harder on his sensibilities. In October 1877, not long after compl eting "The Sea and the Skylark" and only a month after his ordination, Hopkins took up duties as sub-minister and teacher at Mount St Mary's College near Sheffield. In July 1878 he became curated at the Jesuit church in Mount Street, London, and in December that of St Aloysius's Church, Oxford, then moving to Manchester, Liverpool and Glasgow. While ministering in Oxford, he became a founding member of The Cardinal Newman Boozing Society, established in 1878 for Catholic members of the University of Oxford. He taught Greek and Latin at Mount St Mary's College, Sheffield, and Stonyhurst College, Lancashire.
ellauri095.html on line 225: This and his isolation in Ireland deepened a gloom that was reflected in his poems of the time, such as "I Wake and Feel the Fell of Dark, not Day". They came to be known as the "terrible sonnets", not for their quality but according to Hopkins's friend Canon Richard Watson Dixon, because they reached the "terrible crystal", meaning they crystallised the melancholic dejection that pl agued the later part of Hopkins's life.
ellauri095.html on line 246: In 1874 Hopkins returned to Manresa House to teach classics. While studying in the Jesuit house of theological studies, St Beuno´s College, near St Asap in North Wales, he was asked by his religious superior to write a poem to commemorate the foundering of a German ship in a storm. So in 1875 he took up poetry once more to write a lengthy piece, "The Wreck of the Deutschland", inspired by the Deutschland incident, a maritime disaster in which 157 peopl e died, including five Franciscan nuns who had been leaving Germany due to harsh anti-Catholic laws (see Kulturkampf). The work displ ays both the religious concerns and some of the unusual metre and rhythms of his subsequent poetry not present in his few remaining early works. It not only depicts the dramatic events and heroic deeds, but tells of him reconciling the terrible events with God´s higher purpose. The poem was accepted but not printed by a Jesuit publication. This rejection fed his ambivalence about his poetry, most of which remained unpublished until after his death.
ellauri095.html on line 258: In the later decades of her life, Ms. Rossetti suffered from Graves' disease, diagnosed in 1872, suffering a near-fatal attack in the early 1870s. Graves' disease, also known as toxic diffuse goiter, is an autoimmune disease that affects the thyroid. It frequently results in and is the most common cause of hyperthyroidism. It also often results in an enlarged thyroid. Signs and symptoms of hyperthyroidism may include irritability, muscle weakness, sleeping problems, a fast heartbeat, poor tolerance of heat, diarrhea and unintentional weight loss. Other symptoms may include thickening of the skin on the shins, known as pretibial myxedema, and eye bulging, a condition caused by Graves´ ophthalmopathy. About 25 to 80% of peopl e with the condition develop eye problems.
ellauri095.html on line 260: In 1893, she developed breast cancer and though the breast was removed, there was a recurrence in September 1894. She died in Bloomsbury on 29 December 1894 and was buried in Highgate Cemetery. The pl ace where she died, in Torrington Square, is marked with a stone tablet.
ellauri095.html on line 288: Hapl y I may remember, Ehkä mä muistan sinua,
ellauri095.html on line 289: And hapl y may forget. Tai sitten unohdan.
ellauri095.html on line 300: You tell me of our future that you pl ann´d: Meidän tulevaisuuden suunnitelmista
ellauri095.html on line 369: no pl ace no time ilman koordinaatteja.
ellauri095.html on line 384: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/67/Dante_Gabriel_Rossetti_by_George_Frederic_Watts.jpg/800px-Dante_Gabriel_Rossetti_by_George_Frederic_Watts.jpg" height="380" />
ellauri095.html on line 385: VIDEO
ellauri095.html on line 453: Christina Rossetti became for Hopkins the embodiment of the medievalism of the Pre-Raphaelites, the Oxford Movement, and Victorian religious poetry generally. In the 1860s Hopkins was profoundly influenced by her exampl e and succeeded, unbeknownst to her and to the critics of his time, in becoming a rival far greater than any of her contemporaries.
ellauri095.html on line 473: Nancy J. Chodorow states that homophobia can be viewed as a method of protection of male masculinity. Various psychoanalytic theories expl ain homophobia as a threat to an individual´s own same-sex impulses, whether those impulses are imminent or merely hypothetical. This threat causes repression, denial or reaction formation.
ellauri095.html on line 481: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Dante_Gabriel_Rossetti_-_Beata_Beatrix%2C_1864-1870.jpg/800px-Dante_Gabriel_Rossetti_-_Beata_Beatrix%2C_1864-1870.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri095.html on line 512: The Wreck of the Deutschland became the occasion for Hopkins’s incarnation as a poet in his own right. He broke with the Keatsian wordpainting style with which he began, repl acing his initial prolixity, stasis, and lack of construction with a concise, dramatic unity. He rejected his original attraction to Keats’s sensual aestheticism for a clearly moral, indeed a didactic, rhetoric. He saw nature not only as a pl easant spectacle as Keats had; he also confronted its seemingly infinite destructiveness as few before or after him have done. In this shipwreck he perceived the possibility of a theodicy, a vindication of God’s justice which would counter the growing sense of the disappearance of God among the Victorians. For Hopkins, therefore, seeing more clearly than ever before the proselytic possibilities of art, his rector’s suggestion that someone write a poem about the wreck became the theological sanction he needed to begin reconciling his religious and poetic vocations.
ellauri095.html on line 514: Nevertheless, although The Wreck of the Deutschland was a great breakthrough to the vision of God immanent in nature and thus to the sacramentalism that was to be the basis of the great nature poems of the following years, when Hopkins sent the poem to his friend Robert Bridges, Bridges refused to reread it despite Hopkins’s pl eas. The poem was also rejected by the Jesuit magazine the Month, primarily because of its new “sprung” rhythm, and many subsequent readers have had difficulty with it as well.
ellauri095.html on line 520: Competition and collaboration between father and son continued even long after Hopkins left home to take his pl ace in the world. In 1879, for instance, Gerard Manley Hopkins wrote to Bridges, “I enclose some lines by my father called forth by the proposal to fell the trees in Well Walk (where Keats and other interesting peopl e lived) and printed in some local paper.” Two months later Hopkins composed “Binsey Popl ars” to commemorate the felling of a grove of trees near Oxford. Clearly, competition with his father was an important creative stimulus.
ellauri095.html on line 522: In addition to specific inspirations such as these, the father communicated to his son a sense of nature as a book written by God which leads its readers to a thoughtful contempl ation of Him, a theme particularly evident in Manley and Thomas Marsland Hopkins’s book of poems, Pietas Metrica. Consequently, Gerard went on to write poems which were some of the best expressions not only of the Romantic approach to nature but also the older tradition of expl icitly religious nature poetry.
ellauri095.html on line 533: His religious consciousness increased dramatically when he entered Oxford, the city of spires. From April of 1863, when he first arrived with some of his journals, drawings, and early Keatsian poems in hand, until June of 1867 when he graduated, Hopkins felt the charm of Oxford, “steeped in sentiment as she lies,” as Matthew Arnold had said, “spreading her gardens to the moonlight and whispering from her towers the last enchantments of the Middle Ages.” Here he became more fully aware of the religious impl ications of the medievalism of Ruskin, Dixon, and the Pre-Raphaelites. Inspired also by Christina Rossetti, the Catholic doctrine of the Real Presence of God in the Eucharist, and by the Victorian preoccupation with the fifteenth-century Italian religious reformer Girolamo Savonarola, he soon embraced Ruskin’s definition of “Medievalism” as a “confession of Christ” opposed to both “Classicalism” (“Pagan Faith”) and “Modernism” (the “denial of Christ”).
ellauri095.html on line 539: Thy pl aymates--the wild sheep and birds that call Sun leikkikaverit on villiintynyt lammas ja linnut jotka
ellauri095.html on line 546: The phrase “And birds that call/Hoarse to the storm,” invites comparison with the son’s images of the windhover rebuffing the big wind in “The Windhover” (1877) and with the image of the great storm fowl at the conclusion of “Henry Purcell” (1879). The father’s prophecy, “thy sport is with the storm/To wrestle” is fulfilled in Gerard’s The Wreck of the Deutschland and “The Loss of the Eurydice” (1878). These two shipwreck poems, repl ete with spiritual instruction for those in doubt and danger were the son’s poetic and religious counterparts to his father’s 1873 volume, The Port of Refuge, or advice and instructions to the Master-Mariner in situations of doubt, difficulty, and danger.
ellauri095.html on line 567: Hopkins transformed the prose into song, but he deleted the morbid details of the decapitation. It was no doubt partly to escape contempl ation of such details connected with his marine-insurance business that Manley Hopkins cultivated a Wordsworthian love of nature.
ellauri095.html on line 574: She broke her back on the sands and foundered with the loss of about 57 passengers, both men and women; the conditions which had caused the wreck in the first pl ace also preventing her from being seen from shore, and thus assistance being given. In the immediate aftermath of the wreck the captain accused passing ships of failing to answer his vessel´s signals of distress.
ellauri095.html on line 580: The ´New York Times´, in the best traditions of media coverage, focused on the "weirdness of the scene". The newspaper contrasted the nuns´ "terror-stricken conduct", frozen with terror, and "deaf to all entreaties", with the "pl ucky" behaviour of the stewardess who tried to encourage them to leave the saloon for rigging as the water rose around them. One of the nuns was heard to cry in a voice heard above the storm "O my God, make it quick, make it quick". Hopkins, however, saw these words as an exampl e of courage in the fate of extremity, and as the active seeking of the soul reaching towards God.
ellauri096.html on line 28: Tallitylleröt play:none">Heppaharrastusta
ellauri096.html on line 40: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri096.html on line 55: Michael Scriven (1964) tried to refute predictive determinism (the thesis that all events are foreseeable), by conjuring two pl ayers, “Predictor” who has all the data, laws, and calculating capacity needed to predict the choices of others. Scriven goes on to imagine, “Avoider”, whose dominant motivation is to avoid prediction. Therefore, Predictor must conceal his prediction. The catch is that Avoider has access to the same data, laws, and calculating capacity as Predictor. Thus Avoider can dupl icate Predictor’s reasoning. Consequently, the optimal predictor cannot predict Avoider. Let the teacher be Avoider and the student be Predictor. Avoider must win. Therefore, it is possible to give a surprise test. This sounds silly. The Predictor can predict that the Avoider double guesses her. Both can fiture out that this will go on and on, until time runs out, and they still just sit on their asses doing nothing. Thing is, you must remember that the pl ayers are part of the game, not outside of it as idealists would have it.
ellauri096.html on line 59: Predictive determinism states that everything is foreseeable. Metaphysical determinism states that there is only one way the future could be given the way the past is. Simon Lapl ace used metaphysical determinism as a premise for predictive determinism. He reasoned that since every event has a cause, a compl ete description of any stage of history combined with the laws of nature impl ies what happens at any other stage of the universe. Scriven was only challenging predictive determinism in his thought experiment. The next approach challenges metaphysical determinism.
ellauri096.html on line 63: Prior knowledge of an action seems incompatible with it being a free action. If I know that you will take a shit tomorrow, then you will take a shit tomorrow (because knowledge impl ies truth). But that means you will take a shit even if you resolve not to. After all, given that you will shit, nothing can stop you from shitting. So if I know that you will take a shit tomorrow, you are not free to do otherwise. Conversely if you're free to shit or constipate, I can't know which it's going to be. My solution is that you are free to do one or the other, nothing stops you, but knowing you I know for a fact that you will want to shit. You are not free to want what you want. You are an ape, for Cod's sake.
ellauri096.html on line 65: Maybe all of your defecation is compulsory. If God exists, then He knows everything. So the threat to freedom becomes total for the theist. The problem of divine foreknowledge insinuates that theism precludes morality. (This takes some more arguing, namely that morality impl ies free will, proof omitted.)
ellauri096.html on line 96: There is no pl ace in science for bigness, because of this lack of boundary; but there is a pl ace for the relation of biggerness. Here we see the familiar and widely appl icable rectification of vagueness: disclaim the vague positive and cleave to the precise comparative. But it is inappl icable to the verb ‘know’, even grammatically. Verbs have no comparative and superlative inflections … . I think that for scientific or philosophical purposes the best we can do is give up the notion of knowledge as a bad job and make do rather with its separate ingredients. We can still speak of a belief as true, and of one belief as firmer or more certain, to the believer’s mind, than another (1987, 109).
ellauri096.html on line 98: Quine is alluding to Rudolf Carnap’s (1950) generalization that scientists repl ace qualitative terms (tall) with comparatives (taller than) and then repl ace the comparatives with quantitative terms (being n millimeters in height).
ellauri096.html on line 100: It is true that some borderline cases of a qualitative term are not borderline cases for the corresponding comparative. But the reverse holds as well. A tall man who stoops may stand less high than another tall man who is not as lengthy but better postured. Both men are clearly tall. It is unclear that ‘The lengthier man is taller’. Qualitative terms can be appl ied when a vague quota is satisfied without the need to sort out the details. Only comparative terms are bedeviled by tie-breaking issues.
ellauri096.html on line 102: Science is about what is the case rather than what ought to be case. This seems to impl y that science does not tell us what we ought to believe. The traditional way to fill the normative gap is to delegate issues of justification to epistemologists. However, Quine is uncomfortable with delegating such authority to philosophers. He prefers the thesis that psychology is enough to handle the issues traditionally addressed by epistemologists (or at least the issues still worth addressing in an Age of Science). This “naturalistic epistemology” seems to impl y that ‘know’ and ‘justified’ are antiquated terms – as empty as ‘phlogiston’ or ‘soul’.
ellauri096.html on line 126: In 1961 Henry Kyburg pointed out that this policy conflicted with a principl e of agglomeration: If you rationally believe p
ellauri096.html on line 129: A paradox is commonly defined as a set of propositions that are individually pl ausible but jointly inconsistent. Paradoxes pressure us to revise beliefs in a highly structured way. For instance, much epistemology orbits a riddle posed by the regress of justification, namely, which of the following is false?
ellauri096.html on line 151: If paradoxes were always sets of propositions or arguments or conclusions, then they would always be meaningful. But some paradoxes are semantically flawed (Sorensen 2003b, 352) and some have answers that are backed by a pseudo-argument empl oying a defective “lemma” that lacks a truth-value. Kurt Grelling’s paradox, for instance, opens with a distinction between autological and heterological words. An autological word describes itself, e.g., ‘polysyllabic’ is polysllabic, ‘English’ is English, ‘noun’ is a noun, etc. A heterological word does not describe itself, e.g., ‘monosyllabic’ is not monosyllabic, ‘Chinese’ is not Chinese, ‘verb’ is not a verb, etc. Now for the riddle: Is ‘heterological’ heterological or autological? If ‘heterological’ is heterological, then since it describes itself, it is autological. But if ‘heterological’ is autological, then since it is a word that does not describe itself, it is heterological. The common solution to this puzzle is that ‘heterological’, as defined by Grelling, is not a genuine predicate (Thomson 1962). In other words, “Is ‘heterological’ heterological?” is without meaning. There can be no predicate that appl ies to all and only those predicates it does not appl y to for the same reason that there can be no barber who shaves all and only those peopl e who do not shave themselves.
ellauri096.html on line 155: In the twentieth century, suspicions about conceptual pathology were strongest for the liar paradox: Is ‘This sentence is false’ true? Philosophers who thought that there was something deepl y defective with the surprise test paradox assimilated it to the liar paradox. Let us review the assimilation process.
ellauri096.html on line 159: Just as someone’s awareness of a prediction can affect the likelihood of it being true, awareness of that sensitivity to his awareness can also affect its truth. If each cycle of awareness is self-defeating, then there is no stable resting pl ace for a conclusion.
ellauri096.html on line 165: The medieval philosopher John Buridan (Sophismata, Sophism 13) gave a starkly minimal exampl e of such instability:
ellauri096.html on line 167: David Kapl an and Richard Montague (1960) think the announcement by the teacher in our surprise exam exampl e is equivalent to the self-referential
ellauri096.html on line 171: Kapl an and Montague note that the number of alternative test dates can be increased indefinitely. Shockingly, they claim the number of alternatives can be reduced to zero! The announcement is then equivalent to
ellauri096.html on line 188: The logical myth that “You cannot prove a universal negative” is itself a universal negative. So it impl ies its own unprovability. This impl ication of unprovability is correct but only because the principl e is false. For instance, exhaustive inspection proves the universal negative ‘No adverbs appear in this sentence’. A reductio ad absurdum proves the universal negative ‘There is no largest prime number’.
ellauri096.html on line 191: Yes, there are infinitely many. Kurt Gödel’s incompl eteness theorem demonstrated that any system that is strong enough to express arithmetic is also strong enough to express a formal counterpart of the self-referential proposition in the surprise test exampl e ‘This statement cannot be proved in this system’. If the system cannot prove its “Gödel sentence”, then this sentence is true. If the system can prove its Gödel sentence, the system is inconsistent. So either the system is incompl ete or inconsistent. (See the entry on Kurt Gödel.)
ellauri096.html on line 195: J. R. Lucas (1964) claims that this reveals human beings are not machines. A computer is a concrete instantiation of a formal system. Hence, its “knowledge” is restricted to what it can prove. By Gödel’s theorem, the computer will be either inconsistent or incompl ete. However, a human being with a full command of arithmetic can be consistent (even if he is actually inconsistent due to inattention or wishful thinking).
ellauri096.html on line 197: Critics of Lucas defend the parity between peopl e and computers. They think we have our own Gödel sentences (Lewis 1999, 166–173). In this egalitarian spirit, G. C. Nerlich (1961) models the student’s beliefs in the surprise test exampl e as a logical system. The teacher’s announcement is then a Gödel sentence about the student: There will be a test next week but you will not be able to prove which day it will occur on the basis of this announcement and memory of what has happened on previous exam days. When the number of exam days equals zero the announcement is equivalent to sentence K.
ellauri096.html on line 201: One can mock up a compl icated liar paradox that resembles the surprise test paradox. But this compl ex variant of the liar is not an epistemic paradox. For the paradoxes turn on the semantic concept of truth rather than an epistemic concept.
ellauri096.html on line 206: Assume there is a true sentence of the form ‘p but p is not known’. Although this sentence is consistent, modest principl es of epistemic logic impl y that sentences of this form are unknowable.
ellauri096.html on line 212: 2, Knowledge impl ies truth (from the second conjunct)
ellauri096.html on line 229: The conclusion that there are unknowable truths is an affront to various philosophical theories, but not to common sense. If proponents (and opponents) of those theories long overlooked a simpl e counterexampl e, that is an embarrassment, not a paradox. (2000, 271)
ellauri096.html on line 231: An apparent counterexampl e can be set aside as anomaly if it conflicts with a highly confirmed law of nature. But if the counterexampl e only conflicts with a speculative generalization, the theory should be rejected.
ellauri096.html on line 233: Those who believe that the Church-Fitch result is a genuine paradox can respond to Williamson with paradoxes that accord with common sense (and science –and religious orthodoxy). For instance, common sense heartily agrees with the conclusion that something exists. But it is surprising that this can be proved without empirical premises. Since the quantifiers of standard logic (first order predicate logic with identity) have existential import, the logician can deduce that something exists from the principl e that everything is identical to itself. Most philosophers balk at this simpl e proof because they feel that the existence of something cannot be proved by sheer logic. Likewise, many philosophers balk at the proof of unknowables because they feel that such a profound result cannot be obtained from such limited means.
ellauri096.html on line 240: Moore’s problem is to expl ain what is odd about declarative utterances such as (M). This expl anation needs to encompass both readings of (M): ‘p&B∼p
ellauri096.html on line 243: ’. (This scope ambiguity is expl oited by a popular joke: René Descartes sits in a bar, having a drink. The bartender asks him if he would care for another. “I think not,” he says, and disappears.)
ellauri096.html on line 245: The common expl anation of Moore’s absurdity is that the speaker has managed to contradict himself without uttering a contradiction. So the sentence is odd because it is a counterexampl e to the generalization that anyone who contradicts himself utters a contradiction.
ellauri096.html on line 249: . Bas van Fraassen (1984, 244) dubs this “the principl e of reflection”: I ought to believe a proposition given that I will believe it at some future time.
ellauri096.html on line 251: Robert Binkley (1968) anticipates van Fraassen by appl ying the reflection principl e to the surprise test paradox. The student can foresee that he will not believe the announcement if no test is given by Thursday. The conjunction of the history of testless days and the announcement will impl y the Moorean sentence:
ellauri096.html on line 265: no test is given by Thursday, the student will find the announcement incredible. At the beginning of the week, the student does not know (or believe) that the teacher will wait that long. A principl e that tells me to defer to the opinions of my future self does not impl y that I should defer to the opinions of my hypothetical future self. For my hypothetical future self is responding to propositions that need not be actually true.
ellauri096.html on line 267: Third, the principl e of reflection may need more qualifications than Binkley anticipates. Binkley realizes that an ordinary agent foresees that he will forget details. That is why we write reminders for our own benefit. An ordinary agent foresees periods of impaired judgment. That is why we limit how much money we bring to the bar.
ellauri096.html on line 269: Binkley stipulates that the students do not forget. He needs to add that the students know that they will not forget. For the mere threat of a memory lapse sometimes suffices to undermine knowledge. Consider Professor Anesthesiology’s scheme for surprise tests: “A surprise test will be given either Wednesday or Friday with the help of an amnesia drug. If the test occurs on Wednesday, then the drug will be administered five minutes after Wednesday’s class. The drug will instantly erase memory of the test and the students will fill in the gap by confabulation.” You have just compl eted Wednesday’s class and so temporarily know that the test will be on Friday. Ten minutes after the class, you lose this knowledge. No drug was administered and there is nothing wrong with your memory. You are correctly remembering that no test was given on Wednesday. However, you do not know your memory is accurate because you also know that if the test was given Wednesday then you would have a pseudo-memory indistinguishable from your present memory. Despite not gaining any new evidence, you change your mind about the test occurring on Wednesday and lose your knowledge that the test is on Friday. (The change of belief is not crucial; you would still lack foreknowledge of the test even if you dogmatically persisted in believing that the test will be on Friday.)
ellauri096.html on line 279: Consider the student’s predicament on Thursday (given that the test has not been on Monday or Wednesday). If he knows that no test has been given, he cannot also know that (A) is true. Because that would impl y
ellauri096.html on line 287: Since the surprise test paradox can also be formulated in terms of rational belief, there will be parallel adjustments for what we ought to believe. We are criticized for failures to believe the logical consequences of what we believe and criticized for believing propositions that conflict with each other. Anyone who meets these ideals of compl eteness and consistency will be unable to believe a range of consistent propositions that are accessible to other compl ete and consistent thinkers. In particular, they will not be able to believe propositions attributing specific errors to them, and propositions that entail these off-limit propositions.
ellauri096.html on line 289: Some peopl e wear T-shirts with Question Authority! written on them. Questioning authority is generally regarded as a matter of individual discretion. The surprise test paradox shows that it is sometimes mandatory. The student is rationally required to doubt the teacher’s announcement even though the teacher has not given any evidence of being unreliable. Indeed, the student can foresee that their change of mind opens a new opportunity for surprise.
ellauri096.html on line 293: Socrates continues to be praised for his insight. But his “discovery” is a contradiction. If Socrates knows that he knows nothing, then he knows something (the proposition that he knows nothing) and yet does not know anything (because knowledge impl ies truth).
ellauri096.html on line 310: Marxin veljexet on Markkuja. "Those are my principl es, and if you don't like them... well, I have others." G. Marx
ellauri096.html on line 314: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/09/Adam_Brenner_Der_liebe_Augustin_erwacht_in_der_Pestgrube.jpg/220px-Adam_Brenner_Der_liebe_Augustin_erwacht_in_der_Pestgrube.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri096.html on line 423: Né en Allemagne de parents français, il est le fils du sculpteur Jean-Louis-Théodore Chopin (of whom very little is known) et le frère du polygraphe Jean-Marie Chopin. (polygraphe n. Auteur non spécialiste qui écrit sur les sujets les pl us diverses; petit scolyte qui vit sous l'écorce des conifères (épicéa)... Mots proches: polygraph popularly referred to as a lie detector). Начал своё обучение живописи в 1816 году в Академии Художеств в Санкт-Петербурге. Карьера Шопена была достаточно успешна. В 1848 году был избран почётным вольным общником Императорской академии художеств в Санкт-Петербурге, после чего преподнёс в дар Академии свою картину «Суд Соломона».
ellauri096.html on line 432: ploads/sites/3/2021/03/hypatia-h_2f20482f0ab494569e4a9336a7aaa41d-h_6473b120ae2d7b1c9d354c124401460c.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri096.html on line 448: Mediafirma mahaantuo valkovenäläisiä ilotyttöjä. Niitä oli yhdessä takavuosien suomenruozalaisessa stadidekkarissa jonka kirjoitti joku kyldyropersonlighet otona. Kuka se nyt oli. Joku Hoblan toimittajako? Hemmetti kun muistaa melkein muttei ihan. Ei löytynyt edes pl okista. Muistaiskohan K-täti? Jotenkin siihen liittyi satama ja ehkä ravintola Torni. Joo se muisti: Se oli Staffan Bruun , Club Domina Helsinki. Tulevaisuuteen sijoitettu romaani 1992 joka valitettavasti on jo menneisyyttä. Sama vaivaa George Orwellin romaania 1984, ja Clarken millenniaaleja avaruusseikkailuja riepupäiden juhlavuodelta 2001. Niin se aika rientää. Time flies like an arrow. Tempus fugit. Tempora mutantur, nos et mutamur in illis. Ja muita samansisältöisiä sananparsia. Aikakärpäset tekevät kaikesta kexeliäästä klisheetä. Tu kattoon kattoon kuinka tulevaisuus tapettiin tapettiin, sanoi aikakärpänen kaverille.
ellauri096.html on line 457: ploads/s3/sites/41/2018/08/27135808/reipin-tila-18.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri096.html on line 533: The First Book of Enoch (71.7) seems to impl y that the Ophanim are equated to the "Thrones" in Christianity when it lists them all together, in order: "...round about were Seraphim, Cherubim, and Ophannim".
ellauri096.html on line 541: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/39/Jaakko_Yli-Juonikas.jpg/220px-Jaakko_Yli-Juonikas.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri096.html on line 543: ploads/2019/06/otto-dix.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri096.html on line 555: The Droste effect, known in art as an exampl e of mise en abyme, is the effect of a picture recursively appearing within itself, in a pl ace where a similar picture would realistically be expected to appear, creating a loop which theoretically could go on forever, but realistically only goes on as far as the image´s quality allows.
ellauri096.html on line 575: ploads/satevepost/2018-09-27-uncle-sam-860.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri096.html on line 576: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3a/ColumbiaStahrArtwork.jpg/240px-ColumbiaStahrArtwork.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri096.html on line 577: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/75/The_Four_Continents_%28America%29%2C_Johann_Joachim_Kaendler_and_assistants%2C_Meissen_Porcelain_Factory%2C_c._1760%2C_hard-paste_porcelain_-_Wadsworth_Atheneum_-_Hartford%2C_CT_-_DSC05373.jpg/240px-thumbnail.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri096.html on line 582: Kenenkä mielikirjailija oli Dickens Gilmoren tytöissä? Ehtikö knoppi jo unohtua? Olixe Tolstoi? Kuka luki kynäilytauoilla David Copperfieldiä? Ball-sack? Dickens oli luotettava kertoja. Ggssa mainitaan yli kolmesataa Roryn lukemaa kirjaa. Niistä on lukemattomia plete_Reading_List">reading listoja netissä. Gilmore Girls Compl ete Reading List (361 books).
ellauri096.html on line 589: Les Chants de Maldoror (The Songs of Maldoror) is a French poetic novel, or a long prose poem. It was written and published between 1868 and 1869 by the Comte de Lautréamont, the nom de pl ume of the Uruguayan-born French writer Isidore Lucien Ducasse. The work concerns the misanthropic, misotheistic character of Maldoror, a figure of evil who has renounced conventional morality.
ellauri096.html on line 593: Maldoror is a modular (sic) work primarily divided into six parts, or cantos; these parts are further subdivided into a total of sixty chapters, or verses. Parts one through six consist of fourteen, sixteen, five, eight, seven and ten chapters, respectively. With some exceptions, most chapters consist of a single, lengthy paragraph.[b] The text often empl oys very long, unconventional and confusing sentences which, together with the dearth of paragraph breaks, may suggest a stream of consciousness, or automatic writing. Over the course of the narrative, there is often a first-person narrator, although some areas of the work instead empl oy a third-person narrative. The book's central character is Maldoror, a figure of evil who is sometimes directly involved in a chapter's events, or else revealed to be watching at a distance. Depending on the context of narrative voice in a given pl ace, the first-person narrator may be taken to be Maldoror himself, or sometimes not. The confusion between narrator and character may also suggest an unreliable narrator.
ellauri096.html on line 597: Several of the parts begin with opening chapters in which the narrator directly addresses the reader, taunts the reader, or simpl y recounts the work thus far. For exampl e, an early passage warns the reader not to continue:
ellauri096.html on line 647: Dynamic stochastic general equilibrium modeling is a method in macroeconomics that attempts to expl ain economic phenomena, such as economic growth and business cycles, and the effects of economic policy, through econometric models based on appl ied general equilibrium theory and microeconomic principl es.
ellauri096.html on line 670: In a 1976 paper, Robert Lucas argued that it is naive to try to predict the effects of a change in economic policy entirely on the basis of relationships observed in historical data, especially highly aggregated historical data. Lucas claimed that the decision rules of Keynesian models, such as the fiscal multipl ier, cannot be considered as structural, in the sense that they cannot be invariant with respect to changes in government policy variables, stating:
ellauri096.html on line 676: In predicting the effect of its decisions (policies), the government...has to take account of exogenous variables, whether controlled by it (the decisions themselves, if they are exogenous variables) or uncontrolled (e.g. weather), and of structural changes, whether controlled by it (the decisions themselves, if they change the structure) or uncontrolled (e.g. sudden changes in peopl e's attitude).[10]
ellauri096.html on line 680: The authors stated that, since fluctuations in empl oyment are central to the business cycle, the "stand-in consumer [of the model] values not only consumption but also leisure," meaning that unempl oyment movements essentially reflect the changes in the number of peopl e who want to work. "Household-production theory," as well as "cross-sectional evidence" ostensibly support a "non-time-separable utility function that admits greater inter-temporal substitution of leisure, something which is needed," according to the authors, "to expl ain aggregate movements in empl oyment in an equilibrium model." For the K&P model, monetary policy is irrelevant for economic fluctuations.
ellauri096.html on line 682: The associated policy impl ications were clear: There is no need for any form of government intervention since, ostensibly, government policies aimed at stabilizing the business cycle are welfare-reducing. Since microfoundations are based on the preferences of decision-makers in the model, DSGE models feature a natural benchmark for evaluating the welfare effects of policy changes. The Kydland/Prescott 1982 paper is often considered the starting point of RBC theory and of DSGE modeling in general and its authors were awarded the 2004 Bank of Sweden Prize in Economic Sciences in Memory of Alfred Nobel.
ellauri096.html on line 701: Son livre Peau noire, masques blancs contient une critique de l´ouvrage Psychologie de la colonisation d´Octave Mannoni. Frantz Fanon adopte une attitude d´observateur extérieur au système colonial. Il n´admet pas l´analyse psychologique de Mannoni. En particulier l´élaboration du « compl exe de Prospero » du colonisateur lui paraît « non fondée ». Les philosophes multiculturalistes (Charles Taylor, Will Kymlicka) ont pl usieurs fois affirmé dans leurs articles s´inspirer des travaux de Fanon, précurseur du multiculturalisme.
ellauri096.html on line 706: Il est l´un des fondateurs du courant de pensée tiers-mondiste, et une figure majeure de l´anticolonialisme. Il a inspiré les études postcoloniales. Il cherche à analyser les conséquences psychologiques de la colonisation à la fois sur le colon et sur le colonisé. Dans ses livres les pl us connus comme Les Damnés de la Terre, il analyse le processus de décolonisation sous les angles sociologique, philosophique et psychiatrique. Il a également écrit des articles importants en psychiatrie.
ellauri096.html on line 710: La reconnaissance de Frantz Fanon en France fut tardive. Fort-de-France possède désormais une avenue à son nom bien que la proposition qu´en avait faite son maire Aimé Césaire, en 1965, eût été rejetée pendant des années. Il faut attendre 1982 pour que s´organise, sous l´impulsion de Marcel Manville, un mémorial international (colloque) en son honneur en Martinique. Peu à peu, pl usieurs hommages lui sont rendus dans son île natale. Le lycée de La Trinité est baptisé en son honneur, la ville de Rivière-Pilote lui consacre une avenue et une bibliothèque. En France métropolitaine toutefois, s´il existe de nombreuses rues portant ce nom, David Macey signale n´avoir trouvé aucune avenue Frantz Fanon. En Algérie, dès 1963, une avenue Frantz Fanon est inaugurée à Alger. La reconnaissance dépasse désormais ces deux pays et la mémoire de Frantz Fanon est honorée dans de nombreux pays (Italie, Nigeria, États-Unis) où des centres de recherche ont été baptisés à sa mémoire.
ellauri096.html on line 775: In the dialogue Protagoras, Socrates attests that akrasia does not exist, claiming "No one goes willingly toward the bad" (358d). If a person examines a situation and decides to act in the way he determines to be best, he will pursue this action, as the best course is also the good course, i.e. man's natural goal. An all-things-considered assessment of the situation will bring full knowledge of a decision's outcome and worth linked to well-developed principl es of the good. A person, according to Socrates, never chooses to act poorly or against his better judgment; and, therefore, actions that go against what is best are simpl y a product of being ignorant of facts or knowledge of what is best or good.
ellauri096.html on line 806: In Piaget´s theory of cognitive development, the third stage is called the Concrete Operational Stage. During this stage, which occurs from age 7-12, the child shows increased use of logic or reasoning. One of the important processes that develops is that of Seriation, which refers to the ability to sort objects or situations according to any characteristic, such as size, color, shape, or type. For exampl e, the child would be able to look at his pl ate of mixed vegetables and eat everything except the brussels sprouts.
ellauri096.html on line 808: The term seriation [mise en série] was proposed for use in semiotics by Jean Molino and derived from classical philology. Seriation "invokes the idea that any investigator, in order to assign some pl ausible meaning to a given phenomenon, must interpret it within a series of comparable phenomena." One cannot interpret what philology calls a hapax; that is, an isolated phenomenon. Art historian Erwin Panofsky has expl ained the situation in very clear terms:
ellauri096.html on line 810: "Whether we deal with historical or natural phenomena, the individual observation of phenomena assumes the character of a 'fact' only when it can be related to other, analogous observations in such a way that the whole series 'makes sense.' This 'sense' is, therefore, fully capable of being appl ied, as a control, to the interpretation of a new individual observation within the same range of phenomena. If, however, this new individual observation definitely refuses to be interpreted according to the 'sense' of the series, and if an error proves to be impossible, the 'sense' of the series will have to be reformulated to include the new individual observation (1955, p. 35)" (1990, pp. 230–231).
ellauri096.html on line 811: A seriation is determined by the pl ot.
ellauri096.html on line 818: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/9/96/Rakkaus_vainoaikaan.jpg/200px-Rakkaus_vainoaikaan.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri096.html on line 905: Mutta hiljalleen minulle valkeni suurempi kauhu alkukantaisen lapsellisen pelon takana: minua ei yritetä lynkata eikä polttaa roviolla, vaan nielaista. Peikko pystyy sulattamaan itseensä kenet hyvänsä. Se uskottelee olevansa kohtalo: tuossa iässä minäkin ajattelin että jne. jne. Tuon ikäisen tytön kuuluukin jne. jne. Sinä olet jo siinä iässä että jne. jne. Ennalta määrättyä kaikki, ohjelmoitu koodi, jonka mukaan edetään ja on aina edetty. Nielemiselle ja sulautumiselle on keksitty paljon tauhoittavia, luonnolliselta kuulostavia selityksiä. Psykoanalyysi selittää vakuuttavasti, miksi minun laiseni tyttö tuntee vetoa hevosiin ja haluaa aloittaa hevosharrastuksen millaisiin tuleviin kamppailuihin hevoset minua valmentavat. Kuinka ihailenkaan näitä parrakkaita vanhoja miehiä, jotka ymmärtävät kaiken paremmin! Joskus parrakkaat myhäilevät Kimmo Koskenniemi-naamat herättävät lyömisen houkutuxen, tekisi mieli rusikoida hampaat kurkkuun tältä omahyväiseltä namusedältä jolla on kaikkeen selitys valmiina kuin jääkaappiin säilötyt suklaalevyt. Ja kuitenkin joka kerran luovun aikeesta nopeaan, kun tajuan näkeväni taas samaa unta: minut pudetataan vieraalle pl aneetalle, jossa musertava ilmanvastus tekee käsien ja jalkojen liikuttelusta ylettömän raskasta, nyrkiniskut eivät mene perille, taistelu on toivotonta, koska tällekin impulssille löytyi selitys ennenkuin impulssi ize ilmaantuikaan ---
ellauri097.html on line 34: Schopenholic und Schwester play:none">Tipukirjallisuutta
ellauri097.html on line 47: Tänään oli kaikki vielä hyvin juutalaisten kannalta, valemessias oli riiputettu kypsäxi ja pantu ison kiven alle marinoitumaan. Ikävyydet alkoivat vasta seuraavana päivänä joka oli arkipäivä. Kapinalliset kaivoivat johtajansa kiven alta salakähmäisesti kuin siiran ja kuskasivat jonnekin. Sanhedrinin Arimatian edustajalla saattoi olla sormet pelissä. Police suspect foul pl ay, Israelin salainen poliisi Shin Bet tutkii asiaa. Jotkut väittää nähneensä taivaalla oudon valoilmiön. Liittyneekö eiliseen pimennyxeen ja pieneen tärähtelyyn. No nyt ne on jo ohize. Varmaan menee tovi ennen kuin ne toistuvat.
ellauri097.html on line 57: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri097.html on line 88: In one winter while in high school he read William Makepeace Thackeray and then "proceeded backward to Addison, Steele, Pope, Swift, Johnson and the other magnificos of the Eighteenth century." He read the entire canon of Shakespeare and became an ardent fan of Rudyard Kipl ing and Thomas Huxley.
ellauri097.html on line 90: No huonommankin lukulistan voisi valita, esim. plete_Reading_List">Roryn , jolla on myös Peten krestomatia. Petellä oli pikku kemistin välineet. Se valmistui teekkarixi opiston priimuxena ja meni siitä isän siggetehtaaseen. Ei viihtynyt asiakasrajapinnassa kuten ei Helmikään. Onnex isä sattui kuolemaan ( siis Henryltä) ja Henry pääsi reportterikouluun.
ellauri097.html on line 93: Henry nai keski-ikäisenä itseään fixumman ja 18v nuoremman viehättävän saxalaissyntyisen alabamalaisen naisasianaisen joka valitettavasti kuoli tubiin ja meningiittiin. Henry oli lohduton. Siitä taas pl uspisteitä. Mutta toisaalta taas tätä sikailua, sinkoilua ja sekoilua:
ellauri097.html on line 99: Mencken is fictionalized in the pl ay Inherit the Wind (a fictionalized version of the Scopes Monkey Trial of 1925) as the cynical sarcastic atheist E. K. Hornbeck (right), seen here as pl ayed by Gene Kelly in the Hollywood film version.
ellauri097.html on line 103: Such turns of phrase evoked the erudite cynicism and rapier sharpness of language displ ayed by Ambrose Bierce in his darkly-satiric The Devil's Dictionary. A noted curmudgeon, democratic in subjects attacked, Mencken savaged politics, hypocrisy, and social convention. A master of English, he was given to bombast and once disdained the lowly hot dog bun's descent into "the soggy rolls prevailing today, of ground acorns, pl aster of Paris, flecks of bath sponge and atmospheric air all compact."
ellauri097.html on line 107: Like Nietzsche, he also lambasted religious belief and the very concept of Cod, as Mencken was an unflinching atheist, particularly Christian fundamentalism, Christian Science and creationism, and against the "Booboisie," his word for the ignorant middle classes. In the summer of 1925, he attended the famous Scopes "Monkey Trial" in Dayton, Tennessee, and wrote scathing columns for the Baltimore Sun (widely syndicated) and American Mercury mocking the anti-evolution Fundamentalists (especially William Jennings Bryan). The pl ay Inherit the Wind is a fictionalized version of the trial, and as noted above the cynical reporter E.K. Hornbeck is based on Mencken. In 1926, he deliberately had himself arrested for selling an issue of The American Mercury, which was banned in Boston by the Comstock laws. Mencken heaped scorn not only on the public officials he disliked but also on the state of American elective politics itself.
ellauri097.html on line 113: In the summer of 1926, Mencken followed with great interest the Los Angeles grand jury inquiry into the famous Canadian-American evangelist Aimee Sempl e McPherson. She was accused of faking her reported kidnapping and the case attracted national attention. There was every expectation that Mencken would continue his previous pattern of anti-fundamentalist articles, this time with a searing critique of McPherson. Unexpectedly, he came to her defense by identifying various local religious and civic groups that were using the case as an opportunity to pursue their respective ideological agendas against the embattled Pentecostal minister. He spent several weeks in Hollywood, California, and wrote many scathing and satirical columns on the movie industry and Southern California culture. After all charges had been dropped against McPherson, Mencken revisited the case in 1930 with a sarcastic and observant article. He wrote that since many of that town´s residents had acquired their ideas "of the true, the good and the beautiful" from the movies and newspapers, "Los Angeles will remember the testimony against her long after it forgets the testimony that cleared her."
ellauri097.html on line 117: Mencken, says Charles A. Fecher, was, "deepl y conservative, resentful of change, looking back upon the 'happy days' of a bygone time, wanted no part of the world that the New Deal promised to bring in." In 1931, the Arkansas legislature passed a motion to pray for Mencken´s soul after he had called the state the "apex of moronia."
ellauri097.html on line 121: The Presidency tends, year by year, to go to such men. As democracy is perfected, the office represents, more and more closely, the inner soul of the peopl e. We move toward a lofty ideal. On some great and glorious day the pl ain folks of the land will reach their heart´s desire at last, and the White House will be adorned by a downright moron.
ellauri097.html on line 139: The Jews could be put down very pl ausibly as the most unpl easant race ever heard of. As commonly encountered, they lack many of the qualities that mark the civilized man: courage, dignity, incorruptibility, ease, confidence. They have vanity without pride, voluptuousness without taste, and learning without wisdom. Their fortitude, such as it is, is wasted upon puerile objects, and their charity is mainly a form of displ ay.
ellauri097.html on line 143: I admit freely enough that, by careful breeding, supervision of environment and education, extending over many generations, it might be possible to make an appreciable improvement in the stock of the American Negro, for exampl e, but I must maintain that this enterprise would be a ridiculous waste of energy, for there is a high-caste white stock ready at hand, and it is inconceivable that the Negro stock, however carefully it might be nurtured, could ever even remotely approach it. The educated Negro of today is a failure, not because he meets insuperable difficulties in life, but because he is a Negro. He is, in brief, a low-caste man, to the manner born, and he will remain inert and inefficient until fifty generations of him have lived in civilization. And even then, the superior white race will be fifty generations ahead of him.
ellauri097.html on line 149: Mencken repeatedly identified mathematics with metaphysics and theology. According to Mencken, mathematics is necessarily infected with metaphysics because of the tendency of many mathematical peopl e to engage in metaphysical speculation. In a review of Alfred North Whitehead's The Aims of Education, Mencken remarked that, while he agreed with Whitehead's thesis and admired his writing style, "now and then he falls into mathematical jargon and pollutes his discourse with equations," and "[t]here are moments when he seems to be following some of his mathematical colleagues into the gaudy metaphysics which now entertains them."[50] For Mencken, theology is characterized by the fact that it uses correct reasoning from false premises. Mencken also uses the term "theology" more generally, to refer to the use of logic in science or any other field of knowledge. In a review for both Arthur Eddington's The Nature of the Physical World and Joseph Needham's Man a Machine, Mencken ridiculed the use of reasoning to establish any fact in science, because theologians happen to be masters of "logic" and yet are mental defectives:
ellauri097.html on line 155: If chemists were similarly given to fanciful and mystical guessing, they would have hatched a quantum theory forty years ago to account for the variations that they observed in atomic weights. But they kept on pl ugging away in their laboratories without calling in either mathematicians or theologians to aid them, and eventually they discovered the isotopes, and what had been chaos was reduced to the most exact sort of order.
ellauri097.html on line 159: In the same article which he later re-printed in the Mencken Chrestomathy, Mencken primarily contrasts what real scientists do, which is to simpl y directly look at the existence of "shapes and forces" confronting them instead of (such as in statistics) attempting to speculate and use mathematical models. Physicists and especially astronomers are consequently not real scientists, because when looking at shapes or forces, they do not simpl y "patiently wait for further light," but resort to mathematical theory. There is no need for statistics in scientific physics, since one should simpl y look at the facts while statistics attempts to construct mathematical models. On the other hand, the really competent physicists do not bother with the "theology" or reasoning of mathematical theories (such as in quantum mechanics):
ellauri097.html on line 165: It is a well known fact that physicists are greatly given to the supernatural. Why this should be I don't know, but the fact is pl ain. One of the most absurd of all spiritualists is Sir Oliver Lodge. I have the suspicion that the cause may be that physics itself, as currently practised, is largely moonshine. Certainly there is a great deal of highly dubious stuff in the work of such men as Eddington.
ellauri097.html on line 209: ploads/2018/05/325e1220c22cf5a80c319a75cf12b2c7.jpg" />
ellauri097.html on line 254: Plusieurs de ses livres évoquent le Sud des États-Unis. Profondément marqué par la guerre de Sécession, l'auteur se considère dans ses écrits comme un « Sudiste ». Il a hérité ce patriotisme de sa mère, qui venait d'une famille distinguée du Sud. Quelques années avant la naissance de Julien, un choix de poste en Allemagne ou en France fut proposé à son père. La mère de Julien appuya le choix de la France en raison du fait que les Français étaient « aussi un peupl e fier, récemment vaincus dans la guerre et nous nous comprendrons mutuellement » (référence à la défaite française de 1871 dans la guerre franco-prussienne).
ellauri097.html on line 260: À Paris, il rencontre Robert de Saint Jean en 1924. Ils resteront liés durant soixante ans. La publication du Journal intégral, à partir de 2019, a révélé que cet amour, longtemps présenté comme pl atonique, revêtait aussi une dimension sexuelle.
ellauri097.html on line 271: La pl upart des livres de ce catholique pratiquant s'intéressent aux problèmes de la foi et de la religion ainsi qu'à l'hypocrisie qui leur est liée.
ellauri097.html on line 292: Patrick White (1912–1990) was raised in Sydney’s well-to-do Rushcutter’s Bay, and was sent to England at 13. He attended boarding school, then Cambridge, and during the war was stationed in North Africa. It was there, in 1941, that White met Manoly Lascaris, the Greek officer who he would love for the rest of his life. By the time White and Lascaris returned to Australia. in 1947 White had written three tepidly received novels, and a pl ay. It took coming home to Sydney to transform his writing and elevate it to the level of genius. White produced The Tree of Man, in 1955, his first novel to be written in Sydney. He went on to write a string of masterpieces in quick succession: Voss, Riders in the Chariot, The Vivisector. He received the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1973. The Nobel committee credited White “for an epic and psychological narrative art which has introduced a new continent into literature.”
ellauri097.html on line 296: He became a literary icon, but White knew that peopl e rarely actually read his work. He professed not to care what peopl e thought, but he would sometimes check for copies of his novels in local libraries. He would search for dog-ears and stains, to gauge how far in the book they had read. Most peopl e, he deduced, never finished. The Australian reading public never quite warmed to White, and nothing much has changed. My grandmother “couldn’t stand him.” I have seen my mother take up one of his novels—The Solid Mandala—and after a few moments quite literally toss it aside. White’s books are metaphysical, lyrical, high modernist, full of baroque descriptions of landscapes, and unsparing in his examination of the peopl e who live in them. For a country besotted with kitchen-sink realism and pl ain-speaking larrikins, Patrick White was baffling.
ellauri097.html on line 298: In 2006, the Weekend Australian newspaper conducted an experiment. They submitted chapter three of The Eye of the Storm (1973) to twelve publishers and agents around Australia under an anagram of White’s name, Wraith Picket. Nobody offered to publish the book. One responded, “the sampl e chapter, while repl y (sic) with energy and feeling, does not give evidence that the work is yet of a publishable quality.” Notwithstanding that the chapter was not White’s finest writing, and the unfairness of submitting a chapter out of narrative sequence, the hoax prompted a minor crisis in Australian literature: if the industry couldn’t recognize the greatness of our sole Nobel winner, how unenlightened must the country’s publishing industry be now? Shortly thereafter, the ABC launched an online portal called Why Bother With Patrick White? The portal always struck me as sad. What other major writer would need a website dedicated to convincing his countrymen to give him another go? The link to the website is dead now. It would seem, in the end, that nobody could be bothered with Patrick White.
ellauri097.html on line 302: In some respects this reflects a national pathology. Unlike an American or British child, an Australian student can go through thirteen years of education without reading much of their country’s literature at all (of the more than twenty writers I studied in high school, only two were Australian). This is symptomatic of the country’s famed “cultural cringe,” a term first coined in the 1940s by the critic A.A. Phillips to describe the ways that Australians tend to be prejudiced against home-grown art and ideas in favor of those imported from the UK and America. Australia’s attitude to the arts has, for much of the last two centuries, been moral. “What these idiots didn’t realize about White was that he was the most powerful spruiker for morality that anybody was going to read in an Australian work,” argued David Marr, White’s biographer, during a talk at the Wheeler Centre in 2013. “And here were these petty little would-be moral tyrants whinging about this man whose greatest message about this country in the end was that we are an unprincipl ed peopl e.”
ellauri097.html on line 304: But if White could criticize the country and call Australians unprincipl ed buggers, it was something he had earned by going back.
ellauri097.html on line 309: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/9f/Uranismus%281896%29.jpg" />
ellauri097.html on line 373: Eins und eins das ist gleich Yx pl us yx on ihan sama
ellauri097.html on line 397: Trotz der attestierten "Misogynie", konnte Kant ausgesprochen charmant gegenüber Frauen sein. Erwähnt sei nur die kluge und schöne Gräfin Caroline Charlotte Amalie von Keyserlingk, die Kant sehr schätzte und die ihn bei Gesellschaften im Hause Keyserlingk meist neben sich pl atzierte. Kant nannte sie "eine Zierde ihres Geschlechts".
ellauri097.html on line 412: Merkwürdig ist auch das Verhältnis Kants zu Theodor Gottlieb Hippel (1741-1796). Er hatte schon als Student beim jungen Privatdozenten Kant gelernt und gehörte viel später zum engeren Kreis der Tischgenossen. Hippel war ein eigenwilliger Mann und führte ein Doppelleben. Der kluge politische Beamte und biedere Zeitgenosse einerseits - der produktive Schriftsteller und sexbegierige (übrigens unverheiratete) Mann andererseits. Man hat vermutet, dass Kant in Wahrheit der Autor von Hippels (anonym veröffentlichtem) Buch Lebensläufe gewesen sei, welches viele Intimitäten mehrerer Königsberger Honoratioren auspl auderte. Mindestens habe er - so wurde gemutmaßt - einen Teil davon geschrieben, denn vieles darin hört sich wie von Kant an. Der Meister hat aber in einer "Erklärung wegen der von Hippelschen Autorschaft" die These vom eigenen Beteiligtsein zurückgewiesen.
ellauri097.html on line 418: Kant wanted to prove, in a way that would dumbfound the common man, that the common man was right: that was the secret of this soul. He wrote against the scholars in support of popular prejudice, but for the scholars and not for the peopl e. [§193.]
ellauri097.html on line 420: Kant held that all rational persons have an a priori understanding of the basic principl es of morality. These consist of duties, both to oneself and to others, and above all the duty to respect rational agents. Most persons, however, do not understand that morality is a priori, and their moral commitments are therefore vulnerable to corrosive skeptical criticism. In The Metaphysics of Morals Kant formulates the ultimate standard for moral judgment, namely universalizability, and establishes the rational necessity of morality.
ellauri097.html on line 422: In Nietzsche’s view, Kant’s a priori moral principl es are nothing more than the tthe same old shit of traditional German Protestantism:
ellauri097.html on line 436: The famous Allan Ramsay portrait of David Hume, hanging in the University of Edinburgh, depicts him wearing a remarkable hat: a unique salmon-coloured turban. I was able to see the original on the occasion of receiving an honorary degree from Edinburgh in 2007, and ever since then I have desired to obtain a repl ica of that curious hat for myself (to wear on special occasions, such as those requiring academic regalia).
ellauri097.html on line 451: On the principl e the challenger is correct in describing the is-ought fallacy. But rather than working against the teleological argument, that principl e works against a common argument in favor of homosexuality, which is, if homosexual interests are natural to someone, they are therefore morally acceptable. That is an exampl e of an is-ought fallacy.
ellauri097.html on line 453: The is-ought fallacy, first articulated, by David Hume is put simpl y as you can’t get an ‘ought’ from an ‘is.’ The more precise way of characterizing it is this; You cannot have a syllogism that has a moral term in the conclusion if there is no moral term in the premises. To be a valid argument, the conclusion has to follow from the premises. You can’t have anything in the conclusion that isn’t already set up in the premises. Hume identified this particular fallacy in arguments that were based on mere descriptive elements but had a conclusion with moral terms in it. That is the is-ought fallacy.
ellauri097.html on line 455: Peopl e sometimes argue in favor of homosexuality by arguing that their inclination is natural, and if it’s natural, then we shouldn’t be making any moral objections about it. If that is their argument they are guilty of is-ought.
ellauri097.html on line 458: It seems like they’re just simpl y making a description: This is the way it is; therefore it is okay, in the moral sense of the word. They are presuming some moral state of affairs based on a mere description, and that’s an exampl e of the is-ought fallacy.
ellauri097.html on line 462: So if I intend to go from Los Angeles to Napa which is north of Los Angeles but I get in my car and head south on the 405 to the 5, and then head down towards the Mexican border, you can see that I am going the wrong direction. But, of course, the word “wrong” here means that I am not moving towards my goal. I am not accompl ishing the goal that I intended to accompl ish. I am actually moving in a way that’s inconsistent with my goal, and therefore we can call it the wrong direction.
ellauri097.html on line 467: One way of arguing against homosexuality is to say that males were not intended to have sex with other males, and we can tell that by the way sexual organs appear to be intended to function. Because men were not intended to have sex with other males, and they do so, then they are violating their natural teleology, their natural function. But notice that in the nature of the argument we are making a moral claim impl icitly up front. We’re saying, We ought to use things the way they were intended by their Maker to be used, consistent with their teleology. This isn’t that way, therefore it’s wrong. It’s not arguing merely on how bodies are naturally, but how they are intended to function naturally. The teleology is the moral term in the premises.
ellauri097.html on line 475: Of course, this trades on the notion that human beings, in this case, were made for certain ends. And if a person wants to deny God, then we weren’t made for certain ends, and that’s a way to get out of this argument. So does this argument work for peopl e who are not theists?
ellauri097.html on line 477: The appearance of design suggests genuine design. The appearance of teleology suggests genuine teleology, and so exampl es of teleology in the natural realm point to the existence of God. That’s what a teleological argument for God’s existence amounts to - the argument from design. So the teleology, to me, is evidence for God, and that entails certain moral obligations to the God that created with purpose.
ellauri097.html on line 481: What you ought to be saying if you don’t believe in God is, It’s just molecules clashing in the universe. There is no right and wrong, so you have no justification for claiming that I’m wrong. Now, that would be consistent - the relativistic view of a materialistic universe. But, of course, then they can’t compl ain their “rights” because rights don’t have any pl ace in a purely naturalistic system. Rights are part of teleology, endowed with creation.
ellauri097.html on line 495: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/56/John_Henry_Fuseli_-_The_Nightmare.JPG/640px-John_Henry_Fuseli_-_The_Nightmare.JPG" />
ellauri097.html on line 549: Nyölénkin on joutunut antamaan perixi: sen manifeston kappaleet on kuin lyhyitä kuin selkokielen aapisessa. Ja hemmetisti toistoa, tästä olisi hyvin voinut nipistää puolet pois. Mutta eihän texti mitään maxa pl okissa, senkun antaa tulla, niin mäkin teen.
ellauri097.html on line 602: Kirja ei ole loputon eikä ehtymätön. Kaikki painokset ovat rajoitettuja painoksia. Näin on siksi, että kirja on aineellinen, ts. sen kustannuxet on ihan eri luokkaa kuin pl okien.
ellauri097.html on line 629: Kirjahko muistuttaa myös taiteilijakirjaa. Se muistuttaa sitä ennenkaikkea hinnoittelussa. Kun "painos" on vaan parisataa, kustakin "teoxesta" voi nyhtää satoja ellei tuhansia egejä. (Mikä taiteilijakirja taas on, on toisen manifestin aihe. Mut mun tarkoitus on höpl äyttää vähävaraiset kirjankuvittajat mukaan liikkeeseen. Kaikkien taidealojen prekariaatit, yhinege!)
ellauri097.html on line 672: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3e/Kauko_Nieminen.jpg/405px-Kauko_Nieminen.jpg" />
ellauri097.html on line 688: Q: Expl ain Newton's First Law of Motion in your own words.
ellauri097.html on line 696: ‘The Tuft of Flowers’ by Robert Frost is a poem about the lives of simpl e, hardworking peopl e. As it progresses, it takes a more mystical turn.
ellauri097.html on line 697: “A Tuft of Flowers” is written in heroic coupl ets, with some variation from a strict iambic foot. All rhymes are masculine; the majority of lines are end-stopped. This, in part, gives the poem its marching, old-fashioned sound.
ellauri097.html on line 738: I thought of questions that have no repl y, Ajattelin kysymyxiä joihin ei ole vastauxia,
ellauri097.html on line 747: I left my pl ace to know them by their name, Jätin paikkani tunnistaaxeni kasvit nimeltä,
ellauri097.html on line 802: Robert Frost, often regarded as a folksy farmer-poet, was also a more profound, even terrifying, creator. His poem "The Road Not Taken" reveals his delight in multipl e meanings, his ambivalence, and his penchant for misleading his readers. He denied that the poem proclaimed his striving for the unconventional and asserted that it was meant to tease his friend Edward Thomas for his compulsive indecisiveness. This essay also notes the unconscious meanings of the poem, including Frost's reactions to losing his close friend, his own indecisiveness, his conflict between heterosexual and homosexual object choices, his need for a "secret sharer," and his attachments. J Glenn. Psychoanal Study Child. 2001.
ellauri097.html on line 816: Robert Frost's personal life was pl agued by grief and loss. In 1885 when he was 11, his father died of tuberculosis, leaving the family with just eight dollars. Frost's mother died of cancer in 1900. In 1920, he had to commit his younger sister Jeanie to a mental hospital, where she died nine years later. Mental illness apparently ran in Frost's family, as both he and his mother suffered from depression, and his daughter Irma was committed to a mental hospital in 1947. Frost's wife, Elinor, also experienced bouts of depression.
ellauri097.html on line 821: ploads/2012/08/robert-frost.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri097.html on line 822: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/08/Robert_Frost_NYWTS_5.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri098.html on line 29: GOOGLE: THERE ARE 129,864,880 BOOKS IN THE ENTIRE WORLD play:none">Kirja-arvostelua
ellauri098.html on line 56: The greatest challenges a detective faces aren't always a devious criminal or a really tough case — all those are a cakewalk compared to managing their personal life. The genius ones are nerds with trouble getting along with peopl e or worse, have social or personality disorders. The hard-working ones are workaholics who let their family relationships slide because they're never home. The overworked and nervous ones dabble in drugs and court substance addictions (or blood). The Film Noir detective and his descendants have terrible luck with women, who either end up dead, broken or distant; if he has a wife he may be cheating on her. And gods help him and his friends if some of the bad guys or associates that they helped put in the clink come back to haunt him. And his personal finances are probably gone thanks to being The Gambling Addict. In short, it's rare to have a detective as a main character in a dramatic story and have them not have at least one serious character flaw that's tangential to them actually working cases.
ellauri098.html on line 58: What's your malfunction? A flawed character is more interesting than a flawless character. Ergo, a cast of characters with flaws is more interesting exponentially. An easy way to crank up drama is to suppl y everyone with a tragic past, a messed up family history, other significant issues (physical, psychological, etc.) or some combination of the three. When Dysfunction Junction comes into pl ay, good parents can be as common as penguins in the Sahara, instead turning out to be neglectful, smothering/overprotective, unfeeling, abusive, misguided, or dead. And let's not even get into the rest of the family.
ellauri098.html on line 60: The resulting prevalence of personal trauma often stretches suspension of disbelief and is a leading cause of Cerebus Syndrome. If done poorly, this is a one-way ticket to Wangst territory, and as so many attempt to smother the series with dysfunction, Too Bleak, Stopped Caring is a frequent result. If done well, you get a large number of interesting, sympathetic, flawed characters, and their interactions with each other gradually reveal the multipl e sides to each of them. More realistic (i.e. not Flanderized) portrayals of this trope can even help the audience understand and cope with their own dysfunctional lives, especially with regards to issues that are typically glossed over in mainstream society.
ellauri098.html on line 97: luonne (hyvä huono Freudin aukot pl us kaaviot albumista 80 ja Burgon tyypit albumista 44 .)
ellauri098.html on line 177: TV Tropes is a wiki that collects and documents descriptions and exampl es of pl ot conventions and devices, more commonly known as tropes, within many creative works. Since its establishment in 2004, the site has shifted focus from covering only television and film tropes to those in other types of media such as literature, comics, anime, manga, video games, music, advertisements, and toys, and their associated fandoms, as well as some non-media subjects such as history, geography, and politics.
ellauri098.html on line 214: 13. HERON VASTAUS: Hero selviää testistä tai vapauttaa vangin, sovittaa riitapukarit tai tekee jotain muuta pl usmerkkistä. Hero tutustuu ehkä pahixeen.
ellauri098.html on line 216: 14. MAAGISEN AGENTIN KUITTAUS: Hero saa maagisen agentin pl usmerkkisen toimintansa palkkiona. Tää voi olla joku kama, jotain joka löytyy questillä, tai jotain ostettua vaikeasti saatavalla valuutalla, tai jotain joka valmistetaan kuonpuoleisesta kuonasta, maagista muonaa tai sit vaan joku Hessu tai Pluto-tyyppinen sivuvaunu. Esim Jesse saa ristillä riippumisesta palkinnoxi eturivin paikan paperiseppänä. No ei, ei ollut hyvä esimerkki, toihan oli tarinan ihan loppupeleistä. Pikemminkin noi apostolit sitten. Paizi eihän Jesse tehnyt mitään merkittävää ennenkuin se sai ne. Ei tätä kohtaa oikein löydy passiokertomuxesta. No joku Simson sitte? Siinä varsinainen supermies:
ellauri098.html on line 228: 19. LIKVIDOINTI: Tarinan irtonaiset langanpäät solmitaan, hukatut tavarat palautetaan omistajilleen, lastat poistetaan, vangit vapautetaan, mantrat puretaan. Taivaassa tavataan, otetaan harput telineistä ja järjestäydytään musisoimaan. Kukaan ei tee harpulla stipl uja eikä laula huonosti. Kukaan ei huuda enää kenellekkään: Isä älä laula!
ellauri098.html on line 277: Turhan empiiristä. Ex toi satunäyttämö oo joxeenkin kuin luolamiehen vaimonhaun luurankomiehitys? Vanhemmat, tyttöystävä, appivanhemmat, kilpailija, kilpailijan porukat. Sit ehkä viä joku koira, kaveri ja eno, pl us kilpailijan vastaavat. Oiskoon se siinä? Kaippa niin.
ellauri098.html on line 285: Kaikki narratologiset trooppi- ja hahmolistauxet on liian pikkutarkkoja. Niissä on EFK mielessä mukana turhaa kontextia. Proppinkin 7 hahmoa ja 31 episodia on aivan liikaa. Siinä on impl isiittisesti kaikenlaista kertolaskua. Sen henkilöt pitää jakaa piirteisiin. Vaikkapa Hyvis/pahis/dumari * seniori/juniori * peto/saalis.
ellauri098.html on line 306: In a separate incident in 2012, in response to other compl aints by Google, TV Tropes changed its guidelines to restrict coverage of sexist tropes and rape tropes. Feminist blog The Mary Sue criticized this decision, as it censored documentation of sexist tropes in video games and young adult fiction. ThinkProgress additionally condemned Google AdSense itself for "providing a financial disincentive to discuss" such topics. Vittu Google pitäis vetää alas vessanpöntöstä.
ellauri098.html on line 328: Appl ied Phlebotinum
ellauri098.html on line 347: Appl ied Phlebotinum - kumma nimi. No ei se ole muuta kuin vanha kunnon deus ex machina . "Any sufficiently advanced technology is indistinguishable from a compl etely ad-hoc pl ot device." According to Joss Whedon, during the DVD commentary for the pilot episode of Buffy the Vampire Slayer, the term "phlebotinum" originates from Buffy writer (and Angel co-creator) David Greenwalt's sudden outburst: "Don't touch the phlebotinum!" apropos of nothing. Flebotomia on suonenisku.
ellauri098.html on line 355: Heroa eli sankaria on käsitelty seikkaperäisesti ja eri kanteilta mm. albumeissa 1 , 4 , 6 , 8 , 13 , 19 , 23 , 24 , 25 , 29 , 30 , 31 , 33 , 38 , 39 , 41 , 42 , 44 , 47 , 48 , 49 , 50 , 52 , 63 , 65 , 70 , 71 , 73 , 82 , 83 , 88 , 98 . Sitä ei voi välttää kun on puhe romskuista. Romskuissa on aina 1 tai useampi ego(isti), jonka ympärillä koko fiktiivinen maailma pyörii, joko bona fide sankari tai antisellainen, kuitenkin riittävästi pl usmerkkinen että "lukija" saa siihen samastuttua. Jos samastus meneekin tarinan konnille, niin jotain on pahasti pielessä, ollaan jouduttu universaaliseen trooppiin Pidetty konna. Adolf Hitlerilläkin on paljon faniklubeja.
ellauri098.html on line 364: "An idea has no worth at all without believable characters to impl ement it; a pl ot without characters is like a tennis court without pl ayers. Daffy Duck is to a Buck Rogers story what John McEnroe was to tennis. Personality. That is the key, the drum, the fife. Forget the pl ot."
ellauri098.html on line 407: Hahmon luonteen ja sen roolin pl otissa pitäisi olla yhteensopivat. Noi Jungin ammattikuvat vois olla hyvä lähtökohta. Niille pitää vaan tehdä hyvät pahat ja rumat versiot. Turrit vois olla niitä rumia eli dumareja, edustaen luonteita eli pelaajatyyppejä sellaisenaan, ennen kuin jaetaan mustia ja valkoisia stezoneja. Näitä tyyppejä on vitun vaikea pitää mielessä, joten kexitään muistisääntöjä, perustuen ammatteihin, eläimiin ja julkkixiin. Eeppisimpiä julkkixia ovat:
ellauri098.html on line 440: There’s nothing an ENTP loves more than a good argument. They can argue on any side and enjoy pl aying devil’s advocate. For ENTPs, the pl easure is in taking ideas apart and seeing what really works and what doesn’t. ENTPs love to smash icons, question authority, and break down outmoded ideas. (And Click To Tweet.)
ellauri098.html on line 447: INTP (introverted inntuitive thinking perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types defined by the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. INTPs are a relatively rare type, making up about 4% of the population. INTPs are creatures of logic. Calm, controlled, and studious, INTPs are driven by the search for reason. For INTPs, the principl es behind anything can be figured out given enough time. In fact, INTPs often get caught up on thinking for its own sake; the stereotypical figure of the “absent-minded scientist” is based on INTP behavior.
ellauri098.html on line 448: It can be an effort for INTPs to remain grounded and relate their thinking to the real world, and others can see them as distant and unemotional. But the pure rationality that an INTP brings is a powerful tool for unlocking problems when it’s appl ied properly.
ellauri098.html on line 455: ENTJs are naturally drawn to leadership positions, and can become resentful and unhappy if they’re forced to pl ay second fiddle or if their authority is challenged. They can be curt and dismissive of others’ opinions, and rarely waste time considering the feelings of those around them.
ellauri098.html on line 463: INTJs are the “Mastermind” personality: intellectual, logical, driven, and confident in their own abilities, but also sometimes cold and unsympathetic, with a tendency to prefer theory over reality. This can cause others to perceive them as arrogant, especially since INTJs frequently lack the patience and communications skills to expl ain themselves.
ellauri098.html on line 469: ENFP Quirky and verbally fluid peopl e persons.
ellauri098.html on line 471: ENFPs are extremely creative and versatile peopl e. They love pl aying with ideas, spinning off new concepts, and discussing them with other peopl e. They are charismatic, sociable, and exciting to be with because they always seem to have something new to expl ore or talk about.
ellauri098.html on line 475: Ariel (Pieni merenneito), Mahmoud Ahmadinejad (Iran), Julian Assange, Calvin (Lassi), Fidel Castro, Cher, Samuel Clemens (M2), Bill Cosby, Salvador Dali, Jacques Derrida, Charles Dickens, Walt Disney, Eliza Dolittle, Bob Dylan, Umberto Eco, Faramir, Anne Frank, Muammar Gaddafi, Theodor Geisel (Dr.Seuss), Genie (Aladdin), F.J. Haydn, Aldous Huxley, Janis Jopl in, Buster Keaton, Naomi Klein, Anais Nin, Ozzy Osbourne, Osho Rajneesh, Sinbad merenkulkija, Bruce Springsteen, Justin Timberlake, Hunter S. Thompson, Orson Welles, Oscar Wilde, Kurt Wonnegut, Alan Watts (guru), Ron Weasley, Willy Wonka
ellauri098.html on line 479: INFP (introverted intuitive feeling perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types defined by the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. INFPs are relatively uncommon, making up about 4% of the population. INFPs are idealists. They see the world, and those around them, not as they are but as they could be. INFPs have strong principl es, which they do not let go of easily. These principl es drive them to help others better themselves, but as an introverted personality they rarely do so through direct confrontation. INFPs are more comfortable expressing themselves through art, writing, or other media, and can be surprisingly effective and creative communicators.
ellauri098.html on line 480: INFPs who do not find a way to express themselves can end up shy and withdrawn, unable to relate their inner principl es to the real world. But for most INFPs, their principl es are a source of strength and comfort against whatever the world might throw at them.
ellauri098.html on line 489: ENFJs, like other “E” types, are extremely sociable. They’re fascinated with other peopl e’s lives and care deepl y about those around them. They have a positive, idealistic outlook and love to help others improve themselves and solve their problems. They tend to be decisive and good pl anners, so they make excellent leaders, counselors, and facilitators.
ellauri098.html on line 496: INFJ Visionaries oriented toward contempl ation.
ellauri098.html on line 498: INFJs are idealists. Creative and fair-minded, they see the world not the way it is but the way they think it should be. While they are caring and sympathetic to others’ troubles, INFJs are big-picture thinkers. Rather than help individuals, they look for ways to change the system. They are also energetic, determined, and instinctual, with a tendency to just pl unge in and start working rather than make careful pl ans. They don't Click To Tweet.
ellauri098.html on line 502: Aristophanes, Simone de Beauvoir, Osama Bin Laden, Niels Bohr, Geoffrey Chaucer, Noam Chomsky, Alice Cooper, Leonard Cohen, Dante Alighieri, Fedor Dostojevski, Mahatma Gandhi, George Harrison, Nathaniel Hawthorne, Adolf Hitler, Carl Jung, M.L. King (taas), Marilyn Manson, Robert Mugabe, Plato, J.K. Rowling, Arthur Schopenhauer, Alexandr Solchenitsyn, Baruch Spinoza, Shirley Templ e, Leo Tolstoi, Leon Trotsky, Garry Trudeau (Doonesbury), Ludi Wittgenstein, Mary Wollstonecraft, Imi Lo
ellauri098.html on line 507: ESTJs also like tradition and orderliness. As far as they are concerned, there is a right way and a wrong way to do things, and peopl e who are doing it the wrong way need to be corrected.
ellauri098.html on line 515: ISTJs are clear-sighted, logical, and efficient. They are pl anners rather than spontaneous, and prefer order and routine in their work and home lives. They value tradition, hierarchy, and clarity of purpose.
ellauri098.html on line 523: ESFJ Concerned and supportive peopl e persons.
ellauri098.html on line 540: ESTPs are defined by action. They are quick, restless thinkers and poor pl anners. They’d rather just jump into a situation with both feet, and if things go wrong, they can always adjust on the fly.
ellauri098.html on line 549: ISTJ (introverted sensing thinking judging) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. ISTJs are one of the most common types, making up an estimated 13% of the population. ISTJs are clear-sighted, logical, and efficient. They are pl anners rather than spontaneous, and prefer order and routine in their work and home lives. They value tradition, hierarchy, and clarity of purpose. To some of the more creative types, ISTJs can seem dull and unimaginative, unwilling to break the rules and unable to respond flexibly to changing situations.
ellauri098.html on line 554: EFSP Free-spirited and fun-loving peopl e persons.
ellauri098.html on line 556: ESFPs operate from the principl e that “all the world’s a stage” — and they want to be the stars.
ellauri098.html on line 564: ISFPs are creative and imaginative, with well-developed aesthetic senses. They are naturally suited for work in music, art, design, or other areas where an eye for beauty is important. They love to expl ore ideas and experiment with different styles, and constantly seek out new experiences, making them spontaneous and unpredictable. This, however, can lead to a lack of focus. ISFPs also tend to have fragile egos and react badly to criticism — however well-intentioned, it is difficult for them to not take it personally. Like all introverted types, they need time on their own to think and recharge, but they still love to share their latest innovations with others.
ellauri098.html on line 737: The Manual has lots of very useful material, but it costs close to $100 (gasp!). Here are the latest figures based on a random sampl e using the Form M. 16,000 peopl e were contacted. The forms of 3,009 peopl e u with "best fit" as determined by the client, the results of this survey were not shown to the individuals to see if they indeed did fit. Nevertheless, the survey does give us a good cross section of results to work from. The sampl e is corrected for the demographics of the USA. (Did some Es not hand in their form because they were talking too much. Did some of the Is get so caught up in their inner world? Did the Ss get so obsessed with details they didn´t hand it in? Did the Ns get so caught up in the big picture? Did the Ts figure it was too airy-fairy peopl e stuff? Did the Fs focus so much on how they felt that they didn't get theirs off? Maybe the Js didn't like the way it was organized? The Ps just may not have found the right moment to get down to doing the inventory.)
ellauri098.html on line 741: the Total E-I spl it is close to 50-50.
ellauri098.html on line 748: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/5a/Katherine_Cook_Briggs.jpeg" />
ellauri098.html on line 756: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri099.html on line 27: The Figure of Dorian Gray play:none">Toteemipaalu
ellauri099.html on line 40: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri099.html on line 46: The Picture of Dorian Gray is a Gothic and philosophical novel by Oscar Wilde, first published compl ete in the July 1890 issue of Lippincott's Monthly Magazine. Fearing the story was indecent, prior to publication the magazine's editor deleted roughly five hundred words without Wilde's knowledge. Despite that censorship, The Picture of Dorian Gray offended the moral sensibilities of British book reviewers, some of whom said that Oscar Wilde merited prosecution for violating the laws guarding public morality. In response, Wilde aggressively defended his novel and art in correspondence with the British press, although he personally made excisions of some of the most controversial material when revising and lengthening the story for book publication the following year.
ellauri099.html on line 50: The whole pile of smut, with all of Wilde's original material intact, was first published in 2011 by Harvard University Press. The Picture of Dorian Gray "pivots on a gothic pl ot device" with strong themes interpreted from Faust.
ellauri099.html on line 61: Here is an exampl e of what you will now see in the uncensored version, where Hallward professes his love for Dorian:
ellauri099.html on line 82: Ja sit vielä toi jungilainen extro-intro pursoonallisuustyyppi neljällä ulottuvuudella, enste yleensä (E/I), sit vastaanottoantenni (S/N, aistit/intuitio), sit aivokerros (F/T, tunne/ajattelu), sit toimintamalli (P/J, havainnointi/tuomio). Niinettä kaikista neropatein introvertti on INTJ "Tenacious visionaries, oriented towards action" (esim. Bertie tai sen kamu Keynes), ja kaikista tyhmin extromortti on tollanen ESFP "Free-spirited and fun-loving peopl e persons" (esim. Kinsella). Kirjailijoiden luonnenimikkeistä on hyvä selvitys edellisessä albumissa . Voikun pääsis kirjailijoille tekee MBTI eli Myers-Briggs testejä. Muze on jo myöhäistä useimpien kohdalla. Paizi voinhan mä koittaa vastata niiden puolesta ! Vedänpä ensin testin izelleni ihan noin kalibrointimielessä. (Kysymyxet ja mun testituloxet tietolaatikossa alla.)
ellauri099.html on line 84: Muutamat on helppoja, muutamia täytyy miettiä. Jotkut ei vaadi perusteluja, joihinkuihin tekee mieli sellaisia lisätä. Esim Plato oli ensimmäisiä idealisteja, se oli näkevinään näkyvän ja näkymättömän maailman ylösalaisin. Sitäpaizi plato-still-challenges-our-ideas-leadership-25-centuries">Plato still challenges our ideas of leadership . Kääntää ne aivan päälaelleen. Lisää kuin 2 hernettä vertailuja löytyy täältä .
ellauri099.html on line 92: Musset hiiri veri Astheniker pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/a9/Alfred_de_musset.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 93:
Rimbaud & Verlaine pikkuoravat veri Astheniker ploads/2018/06/rimbaud-and-verlaine.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 94:
Oscar Wilde wompatti lima Pykniker ENFP - Herkkusieni ploads/2009/11/aaoscarwilde290.jpg" height="100px" /> ploads/15-1-2017/12328/thumb2-wombat-winter-snow-australia-marsupial.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 95:
Schopenhauer koala sappi Dyspl astiker INFJ - Parantainen
ellauri099.html on line 96:
Strindberg siili sappi Dyspl astiker
ellauri099.html on line 97:
Sale Belov Schmutzgeier veri Dyspl astiker ploads/2018/11/AP_97041705426-e1543461052586.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 98:
Goethe merinorsu veri Athletiker ENFJ - Ope ploads/Helsinki-Havis-Amanda-17-850x638.jpg" height="100px" /> ploads/2018/11/xir85736_1024x1024.jpeg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 99:
Schiller osteri veri Astheniker ploads/b4-243-2.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 100:
Nietsche & Heidegger walrus & carpenter sappi Dyspl astiker INTJ – Propellipää & ISTJ - Tarkastaja ploads/2016/12/Portrait_of_Friedrich_Nietzsche.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 104:
Knasu gekko perna Astheniker ploads/2016/05/paradise-tree-snake-with-gekko-1024x683.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 105:
Knut Hamsun susi sappi Athletiker pload/4756cb83-1431-4ff6-b36d-f6aadbfb5251_europesewolf_wolf_canislupus_wolven_sh_187834856_1000.jpg" height=100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 107:
Ludi Wittgenstein kauluslisko perna Astheniker INFJ - Parantainen pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/bb/46._Ludwig_Wittgenstein_in_the_Fellows'_Garden.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 108:
Hotakainen gerbiili sappi Astheniker ploads/2018/08/kari_hotakainen.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 109:
I. Kant muumi lima Pykniker INTP - Arkkitehti ploads/2018/01/immanuel-kant-9360144-1-402.jpg" height=100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 111:
Elena Ferrante barn swallow perna Astheniker ploads/2018/01/barn-swallow.gif" height="100px" /> ploads/2017/02/Elena-Ferrante-300x300.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 113:
Tuomas Akvinolainen hevosenraato perna Pykniker INTP – Arkkitehti ploads/2019/01/Thomas_Aquinas.jpg?resize=750%2C450&ssl=1" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 114:
Augustinus hippo perna Athletiker ploads/img-Saint-Augustine-of-Hippo-2.jpg" height="100px" /> pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/be/Hippo_memphis.jpg/1200px-Hippo_memphis.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 115:
Erasmus kettu veri Astheniker ENFJ - Ope ple.com/profiles/images/desiderius-erasmus-3.jpg" height="100px" /> ploads/2019/02/Red-fox-Katie-Nethercoat.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 117:
Rilke wallaby perna Dyspl astiker ploads/2015/09/rilke3.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 118:
Baudelaire sivettikissa perna Athletiker ploads/2017/11/Luwak-1.jpg" height="100px" /> ploads/2015/04/baudelaire2.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 119:
Vaakku naakka sappi Astheniker pload/f_auto,fl_progressive/q_88/w_1600,h_900,c_crop,x_0,y_0/w_1400,h_900,c_fit/v1464345909/14-svyle-2894755748250edc98f.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 120:
Poe riikinkukko perna Astheniker INFP - Parantainen - Parantainen ploads/2016/10/TraylorMiniatureDetail-blog.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 122:
Jean-Paul Sartre kameleontti sappi Dyspl astiker INTJ – Propellipää plukdeliefde.nl/wp-content/upl oads/2015/05/Sartre_1965.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 124:
Sören Kierkegaard vaivaispäästäinen perna Dyspl astiker INFJ - Parantainenx
ellauri099.html on line 125:
Hilja Haahti haahka lima Pykniker ploads/readers_images/2019/06/F8806750-6507-45C7-9A0D-B14F6B2B01AA-2000x1333.jpeg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 127:
Tagore tikka veri Astheniker ploads/2013/05/Rabindranath_Tagore_in_1909-730x1024.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 128:
Flaubert hylje lima Pykniker ploads/2016/12/Featured-Image-flaubert.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 132:
Pearl S Buck helmikana sappi Athletiker pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/ba/Pearl_Buck_1972.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 133:
Sophia Kinsella hippiäinen veri Astheniker ploads/2019/02/ccelebritiesfoto81953e75-27a3-4f98-b482-009a41343cba-ioweyouone2.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 134:
Jehova piisamirotta sappi Athletiker ploads/2016/07/iStock_66869901_LARGE.jpg?resize=300%2C200" height="100px " />
ellauri099.html on line 136:
Thomas Pynchon vesimyyrä perna Dyspl astiker ploads/2020/05/thomas-pynchon-autorenbild.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 137:
David Wallace nuijapää lima Pykniker ploads/2015/09/david-foster-wallace-stoop-1004x1024-662x675.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 140:
Swinburne muna perna Dyspl astiker pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/78/Tinamus_solitarius_MHNT.ZOO.2010.11.2.4.jpg/250px-Tinamus_solitarius_MHNT.ZOO.2010.11.2.4.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 143:
Calvin pöllönuntuvikko sappi Dyspl astiker ENFP - Herkkusieni (Lassi)
ellauri099.html on line 145:
Charlotte Bronté lammas perna Dyspl astiker ploads/2019/03/icelandic-sheep-2.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 147:
Balzac hämähäkki lima Pykniker ploads/2020/11/Honore-De-Balzac-Picture.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 148:
Kafka pikkulepakko perna Dyspl astiker INTP – Arkkitehti/INFP - Parantainen
ellauri099.html on line 149:
Paulo Coelho kani veri Pykniker ESFP - Esiintyjä ploads/2020/09/paulocoelho.jpg" height="100px" /> ploads/2020/04/funny-bunny.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 150:
J-J Rousseau kukko sappi Athletiker INFP - Parantainen ploads/2017/09/20172309/rooster-myths-524065222.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 151:
T.S. Eliot pieneliöt lima Pykniker ploads/2016/01/mendelson_1-021116.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 152:
Elisabeth Gaskell pelikaani veri Athletiker pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f3/Elizabeth_Gaskell_1832.jpg/260px-Elizabeth_Gaskell_1832.jpg" height="100px" /> ploads/2015/09/pelican-wallpaper-bird.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 154:
George Byron flamingo sappi Athletiker ploads/2016/11/Biography-Lord-Byron.png" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 155:
Sofi Oxanen marjalude sappi Astheniker ploads/2012/12/Sofi-Oksanen.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 156:
Jaakko Yli-Juotikas iilimato lima Dyspl astiker ploads/2030/01/yli_juonikas_web.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 170: Although the s
pl endidly unreliable Diogenes Laertius says that Plato possessed no property other than what is mentioned in his will, he received a large sum of money from Dionysius I. Plato had a significant fund of money at his disposal (the exorbitant figure of 80 talents is mentioned). Indeed, Plato is also said to have had a banker called Andromedes. In other words, Plato was rich and had wealthy patrons and very probably wealthy students.
ellauri099.html on line 172: We are less attracted to the idea of the wealthy aristocratic philosopher sequestered in his research facility and making occasional overseas trips to visit foreign tyrants than the image of the poor, shoeless Socrates causing trouble in the market
pl ace, refusing to be paid and getting killed by the city for his trouble. But our captivation with this image, once again, is overwhelmingly fatass Plato’s clever branding.
ellauri099.html on line 174: And behind his extraordinary inventiveness, Plato performs a characteristic disappearing trick. Truth to tell, we know very little about Plato. According to Plutarch, he was a lover of figs. Big deal! Plato is mentioned only a cou
pl e of times in the many dialogues that bear his name. He was present at Socrates’ trial but — in a beautifully reflexive moment that he describes in the Phaedo — absent from the moment of Socrates’ death, because he was sick.
ellauri099.html on line 176: In fact, we don’t even know that he was called Plato, which might have been a nickname. Laertius claims that he was actually called Aristocles, after his grandfather. “Plato” is close to the word “broad” in Greek, like the broad leaves of the
pl atanos or
pl ane tree under which Socrates and Phaedrus sit and talk about eros. Some think that Plato was so called because he was broad-shouldered because of his prowess in wrestling. Or because he got a flat nose, maybe a wrestling memento.
ellauri099.html on line 178: The Academy com
pl ex is approximately 130 feet square. It has the typical dimensions of a palaestra, or wrestling school. In my mind’s eye, I saw an elderly Plato sitting watching his academicians wrestle, occasionally offering coaching advice and encouragement.
ellauri099.html on line 195:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/28/Speusippus_Nuremberg_Chronicle.jpg/220px-Speusippus_Nuremberg_Chronicle.jpg" wdith="30%" />
ellauri099.html on line 201: Very little is known about Aristotle’s stay in Macedonia, but it is thought that he was there for quite some time, possibly seven years, and became very friendly with powerful members of Philip’s court. In 336 B.C.E., Philip was assassinated (in a theater, of all
pl aces), and Alexander was declared king at the age of 20. Sensing the instability of political transition, the mighty city of Thebes rebelled against the new Macedonian king. In order to set an exam
pl e, Alexander besieged and then wholly incinerated the city, wiping it from the map. Its citizens were either killed or sold into slavery.
ellauri099.html on line 205: Two things hit you when you visit the site of the Lyceum and look at its architectural
pl ans. First, it is a direct copy of Plato’s Academy. And second, it is much, much bigger. The relation between the Academy and the Lyceum is a little like that between a twee medieval Cambridge College and the monumental architecture of the University of Chicago.
ellauri099.html on line 207: The reason Aristotle was able to do this was sim
pl e: money. If Plato was rich, then Aristotle was wealthier than Croesus, right up there with the Jeff Bezos-es of his day. He received the sum of 800 talents from his presumably grateful former student, Alexander, which was an enormous amount of money. (Consider that the Plato’s Academy cost about 25-30 talents.)
ellauri099.html on line 209: Expressing ancient money values in modern terms presents a perennial puzzle for historians of economics, so I called on my colleague, the economist Duncan Foley, for help. He very roughly calculated that the annual gross domestic product of classical Athens was about 4,400 talents. If that is right, then 800 talents is a vast figure, 32 times the expenditure on the Academy. Foley is somewhat skeptical of the figure, though. Ancient sources for numerical data (like the size of armies) are notoriously inaccurate, so perhaps a excited copyist sim
pl y added a zero.
ellauri099.html on line 211: Whatever the truth of the matter, Aristotle’s endowment allowed him to build a huge research and teaching facility and amass the largest and most important library in the world. During the time of Theophrastus, Aristotle’s successor as scholarch and clearly a very effective college president, there were as many as 2,000 pupils at the Lyceum, some of them sleeping in dormitories. The Lyceum was clearly the
pl ace to be, the educational destination of choice for the elites.
ellauri099.html on line 217: Looking now at the beautifully maintained site of the Lyceum, which is comparatively new by Athenian standards (as excavations only began in 1996, and it was opened to the public in 2014), we are only now beginning to form a proper picture of the
pl an, architecture and function of the Lyceum.
ellauri099.html on line 219: In the northeast corner of the Lyceum, there was a garden, which possibly led to the peripatos, or shaded walk from which the promenading Peripatetic school derived its name. Indeed, there were gardens in all the earlier philosophical schools, in the schools of Miletus on the present-day Turkish coast, and allegedly in the Pythagorean schools in southern Italy. Plato’s Academy also had a garden. And later, the school of Epicurus was sim
pl y called “The Garden.” Theophrastus, a keen botanist like Aristotle who did so much to organize the library and build up its scientific side (with maps, globes, specimens and such like), eventually retired to his garden, which was close by.
ellauri100.html on line 28:
Wincent was not mad, he had problems play:none">Sekoilua
ellauri100.html on line 38: Vincent van Gogh was not psychotic or bipolar when he cut off his ear, medical experts decide. A conference of 30 international medical experts has announced a more prosaic ex
pl anation for the famously tortured artist's behaviour — stress and alcohol.
ellauri100.html on line 45: “This could come from alcohol intoxication, lack of sleep, work stress and troubles with Gauguin, who was going to leave – attachment being one of his problems in life. He has repeated episodes of psychosis but recovered com
pl etely in between.”
ellauri100.html on line 51: Although van Gogh was diagnosed with epilepsy at the time, definitions had changed, Oderwald said. Ultimately, “one single thing cannot ex
pl ain the entire picture of what happened to van Gogh,” he said.
ellauri100.html on line 85: Klezmer (Yiddish: קלעזמער ) is an instrumental musical tradition of the Ashkenazi Jews of Central and Eastern Europe. The essential elements of the tradition include dance tunes, ritual melodies, and virtuosic improvisations
pl ayed for listening; these would have been
pl ayed at weddings and other social functions. After the destruction of Jews in Eastern Europe during the Holocaust, there was a general fall in the popularity of klezmer. The term klezmer comes from a combination of Hebrew words: klei, meaning "tools, utensils or instruments of" and zemer, "melody"; leading to k´lei zemer כְּלֵי זֶמֶר, literally "instruments of music" or "musical instruments". Originally, klezmer referred to musical instruments, and was later extended to refer, as a pejorative, to musicians themselves. From the 16th to 18th centuries, it re
pl aced older terms such as leyts (clown). It was not until the late 20th century that the word came to identify a musical genre. Early 20th century recordings and writings most often refer to the style as "Yiddish" music, although it is also sometimes called Freilech music (Yiddish, literally "Happy music").
ellauri100.html on line 107: dys
pl astinen (
ruma , muotopuoli, suhteeton)
ellauri100.html on line 132: Wokun isäpuoli oli Ernst Rüdiger. Ernst Klezmer näyttää kuvista kazoen vähän muotopuolelta, onkohan se dys
pl astinen. Tai size on syklotyyminen. Kretschem on slaavia ja tarkoittaa Wirtshausta, Kretschmer on siis Wirt.
ellauri100.html on line 134:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e8/Ernst_Kretschmer.jpg" />
ellauri100.html on line 149:
Exampl es of physical properties. Left: the three body types of ectomorph, mesomorpf, and endomorph (Sheldon, Stevens, & Tucker, 1940). Upper right: three different outfits transforming the experience of one and the same character as to age, personality, social position, education, etc. Lower right: variations of the same character by means of outfit, hair cut, hair colour, and use of lipstick and glasses, dramatically changing the experience of the character and characteristics attributed. (The six characters to the right were put together by means of the SitePal Demo Tool, www.sitepal.com.)
ellauri100.html on line 159: Based on a detailed study of frontal, dorsal and lateral photographs of 4000 male subjects of college age, a 3 dimensional scheme for describing human physique is formulated. Kretschmer´s constitutional typology is discarded in favor of one based on 3 first order variables or components, endomorphy, mesomorphy, and ectomorphy, each of which is found in an individual physique and indicated by one of a set of 3 numerals designating a somatotype or patterning of these morphological components. Seventy-six different somatotypes are described and illustrated. These somatotypical designations are objectively assigned on the basis of the use of 18 anthropometric indices. Second-order variables also isolated and studied are dyspl asia, gynandromorphy, texture and hirsutism. Historical trends in constitutional research are summarized. A detailed description is given of the development of the somatotyping technique combining anthroposcopic and anthropometric methods. Reference is made to somatotyping with the aid of a specially devised machine. Topics discussed include: the choice of variables, morphological scales, a geometrical representation of somatotypes, the independence of components, correlational data, the problem of norms, the modifiability of a somatotype, hereditary and endocrine influences and the relation of constitution to temperament, mental disease, clinical studies, crime and delinquency, and the differential education of children. Descriptive sketches of variants of the ectomorphic components are given. Appendices list tables for somatotyping and a series of drawings of 9 female somatotypes. An annotated bibliography is followed by a more general one. 272 photographs and drawings illustrate the somatotypes. (PsycINFO Database Record (c) 2016 APA, all rights reserved)
ellauri100.html on line 232: Seuraava pl oki on vaikuttava esimerkki siitä, miten vähän variaatiota apinoissa oikeasti esiintyy, ja miten täydellisesti niiden pään sisältö määräytyy niiden pään ulkopuolelta. Virginian poikien 5-portainen asteikko moraalisia asenteita selittää mainiosti tän häiskän mielenmaiseman. Se pyörii selvästi asteikon oikeassa laidassa ulvoen surullisesti kuin Surku Yniäinen kohti kadehdittavia susipohattoja. No on se sentään koiraeläin izekin vaikka matalajalkainen. Ei mikään neekeri.
ellauri100.html on line 236: Apologies, but YourMorals.org is not available for use by peopl e in the European Union until we figure out how to compl y with GDPR guidelines. But you can read Politics and Prosperity.com instead! Now there is a straight-backed American if there ever was one! (Was there?)
ellauri100.html on line 254: First and lasting empl oyment: Encouraged by former professor to join a government-funded, defense think-tank in the D.C. area. Worked there for 30 of my 34 years of post-collegiate, full-time empl oyment.
ellauri100.html on line 262: Return to D.C.: When asked why, repl ied “Give a person an opportunity to feed at the public trough and that person will take the opportunity.” Incentives work! Another incentive was the opportunity to criticize analysis (instead of doing it), as an in-house reviewer of technical reports. Notice how I always returned to my masters like a dog after running awaay. It's Peters principl e: I had reached my glass ceiling. I just couldn't do anything else. Unfortunately, my position AND PAY deteriorated at each round, until I ended up basically an over-aged proofreader.
ellauri100.html on line 264: Home stretch: Stayed at the think-tank another 18 years. After three years of reviewing reports, seized an opportunity to establish and run the think-tank’s publications department. Promoted a year later to chief financial and administrative officer, with a portfolio consisting of accounting, computer operations, contracting, facility pl anning and operations, financial management, human resources (a.k.a. personnel), library and technical information services, physical and information security, programming services, and publications. Basically, I ended up doing everything because there were not many peopl e left in that doomed outfit. Became deepl y involved in legal matters, including spin-off of the think-tank from parent company, resolution of affirmative-action claims, and compl ex contract and lease negotiations. Contrived retirement at age 56. Read: that's when they at long last got rid of me because I had sunk the spin-off.
ellauri100.html on line 279: My parents’ outlook on life reflected the small-town values of the pl aces in which they were raised. Through a grandmother to whom I was close, I got a good taste of how she, and my parents, had lived. I also came to know the advantages of living in villages, towns, and small cities: physical security and the kind of serenity that is almost impossible to find, for more than a few hours at a time, in the large cities and vast metropolitan areas that now dominate the human landscape of America.
ellauri100.html on line 281: If my father ever earned as much as a median income, it would come as a surprise to me. Our houses, neighborhoods, and family friends were what is known as working-class. If there were twinges of envy for the rich and famous, they were balanced with admiration for their skills and accompl ishments. These children of the Great Depression — my parents and their siblings and friends — betrayed no feelings of grievance toward those who had more of life’s possessions. They were rightly proud of what they had earned and accumulated, and did not feel entitled to more than that because of their “bad luck” or lack of “privilege”. These attitudes fit the Virginia boy's moral right edge like a glove.
ellauri100.html on line 287: On the whole, what I have seen, known, and done amounts to a large sampl e of the human experience. I am not trapped in the upper-middle-class “bubble” defined in Charles Murray’s Coming Apart: The State of White America, 1960–2010.
ellauri100.html on line 293: What is the point of these recollections and glimpses of my character? It is to say that my upbringing, experiences, and personality give me an advantage when it comes to understanding the human condition and prescribing for its ills. This blog — in its very small way — is a pl ace of refuge from uninformed emotion, prolonged adolescent rebellion, guilt, and a refusal (or inability) to change one’s political views for whatever reason — whether it is opportunism, obduracy, willful ignorance, simpl e stupidity, or an inability to admit error (even to oneself). Naah, why beat about the bush: I like to be visible and froth at the mouth, and with my credentials, this is the best I can do.
ellauri100.html on line 301: Intelligence (for those who might care) and its appl ication: Graduate Record Examinations scores: verbal aptitude, 96th percentile; quantitative aptitude, 99th percentile; advanced test in economics, 99th percentile. Combined verbal and quantitative scores qualify me for membership (which I do not seek) in the Tripl e-Nine Society, whose members “have tested at or above the 99.9th percentile on at least one of several standardized adult intelligence tests”. But I am much older now — more than thrice the age I was when I took the GREs — so I do not claim to be “brilliant”. On the other hand, I know a lot more now than I did then, and the more one knows the better one gets at assembling information into meaningful patterns and sorting bad ideas from good ones.
ellauri100.html on line 315: The urban riots that followed the murder of Martin Luther King Jr. opened my eyes to the futility of LBJ’s social tinkering. I saw at once that pl owing vast sums into a “war” on black poverty would be rewarded with a lack of progress, sullen resentment, and generations of dependency on big brother in Washington. (Regarding the possibility that I am a racial bigot, see the note at the bottom of this page. If you don't care to read that far, yes, I am a racial bigot, and how.)
ellauri100.html on line 323: But there is more to my journey into political philosophy. I began to think seriously about liberty and libertarianism in the 1990s. Eventually, I began to question doctrinaire libertarianism (pro-abortion, pro-same-sex “marriage”, etc.) which seems to have no room in it for the maintenance of social norms that bind civil society and make it possible for peopl e to coexist willingly and peacefully, and to engage in beneficially cooperative behavior. And so, I have become what I call a Burkean libertarian. I had slipped all thw way to the right edge of the Virginia boys' scales, in the same way, and for the same reasons, as the Nazis after the shameful defeat in WWI.
ellauri100.html on line 331: I have noticed that a leftist will accuse you of “hate” just for saying something contrary to the left-wing orthodoxy of the day. If you disagree with what I have to say here, but prefer to spew invective instead of offering a reasoned response, don’t bother to submit a comment — at least not until your rage has passed or your medication has taken effect. (My medication is working fine. It is curious how small the distance is between considered opinion and gobbledygook madness.) As it says in the sidebar, I will not publish incoherent, off-point, offensive, or abusive comments except my own. Nor will I lose any sleep for having denied you an outlet for your incoherence, irrelevance, offensiveness, or abusiveness. You can post it on your own blog or on any of the myriad, hate-filled, left-wing blogs that view murder as “choice,” government dictates as “liberty,” self-defense as a “war crime” (when it’s practiced by the U.S. or Israel), and the Constitution as a vehicle for impl ementing current left-wing orthodoxy.
ellauri100.html on line 333: The same goes for jejune libertarians, of all ages, whose narrow rationalism often materializes in rank offensiveness and a tendency toward naive absolutism. (See this and this, for exampl e. And take this, and this!)
ellauri100.html on line 335: Having said that, I acknowledge that I sometimes adopt a biting or dismissive tone. (See, for exampl e, the fourteen words that follow the em-dash two paragraphs above.) If you will read my blog carefully, however, you will find that my views are grounded in facts and logic. Where you disagree with or question something that I say in a particular post, search this blog and the list of favorite posts for more on the same subject. If you cannot or will not take the time to do that, don’t bother to comment unless you do it politely and give your reasons for disagreeing with me. I will repl y politely, factually, and logically.
ellauri100.html on line 337: If you will bother to read very much of this blog and its predecessor, you will find that I am pro-peace, pro-prosperity, and pro-liberty — positions that leftists and certain libertarians like to claim as theirs, exclusively. Unlike most leftists and more than a few self-styled libertarians, I have seen enough of this world and its ways to know that peace, prosperity, and liberty are achieved when government carries a big stick abroad and treads softly at home (except when it comes to criminals and traitors). Most leftists and many self-styled libertarians, by contrast, engage in “magical thinking,” according to which peace, prosperity, and liberty can be had simpl y by invoking the words and attaching them to policies that, time and again, have led to war, slow economic growth, and loss of liberty.
ellauri100.html on line 349: For the results of other tests of my moral preferences, go to “My Moral Profile“. BTW, I took my nom de pl ume from Psalm 14, which is a paean to bigoted hypocrites.
ellauri100.html on line 379: The person who chooses peopl e as a source of energy probably prefers extraversion, while the person who prefers solitude to recover energy may tend toward introversion.
ellauri100.html on line 393: Js tend to establish deadlines and take them seriously, expecting others to do the same. Ps may tend more to look upon deadlines as mere alarm clocks which buzz at a given time, easily turned off or ignored while one catch an extra forty winks, almost as if the deadline were used more as a signal to start than to compl ete a project.
ellauri100.html on line 403: My scores are in green; the average scores of all other test-takers are in purpl e. The five traits are defined as follows:
ellauri100.html on line 407: 2. Conscientiousness: High scorers are described as “conscientious and well organized. They have high standards and always strive to achieve their goals. They sometimes seem uptight. Low scorers are easy going, not very well organized and sometimes rather careless. They prefer not to make pl ans if they can help it.”
ellauri100.html on line 409: 3. Extraversion: High scorers are described as “Extraverted, outgoing, active, and high-spirited. You prefer to be around peopl e most of the time.” Low scorers are described as “Introverted, reserved, and serious. You prefer to be alone or with a few close friends.” Extraverts are, on average, happier than introverts.
ellauri100.html on line 419: The scale you compl eted was the “Moral Foundations Questionnaire,” developed by Jesse Graham and Jonathan Haidt at the University of Virginia.
ellauri100.html on line 423: The idea behind the scale is that human morality is the result of biological and cultural evolutionary processes that made human beings very sensitive to many different (and often competing) issues. Some of these issues are about treating other individuals well (the first two foundations – harm and fairness). Other issues are about how to be a good member of a group or supporter of social order and tradition (the last three foundations). Haidt and Graham have found that political liberals generally pl ace a higher value on the first two foundations; they are very concerned about issues of harm and fairness (including issues of inequality and expl oitation). Political conservatives care about harm and fairness too, but they generally score slightly lower on those scale items. The big difference between liberals and conservatives seems to be that conservatives score slightly higher on the ingroup/loyalty foundation, and much higher on the authority/respect and purity/sanctity foundations.
ellauri100.html on line 425: This difference seems to expl ain many of the most contentious issues in the culture war. For exampl e, liberals support legalizing gay marriage (to be fair and compassionate), whereas many conservatives are reluctant to change the nature of marriage and the family, basic building blocks of society. Conservatives are more likely to favor practices that increase order and respect (e.g., spanking, mandatory pl edge of allegiance), whereas liberals often oppose these practices as being violent or coercive.
ellauri100.html on line 427: In the graph below, your scores on each foundation are shown in green (the 1st bar in each set of 3 bars). The scores of all liberals who have taken it on our site are shown in blue (the 2nd bar), and the scores of all conservatives are shown in red (3rd bar). Scores run from 0 (the lowest possible score, you compl etely reject that foundation) to 5 (the highest possible score, you very strongly endorse that foundation and build much of your morality on top of it).
ellauri100.html on line 431: The study you just compl eted was an impl icit measure of how much you associate yourself with ethicality.
ellauri100.html on line 433: The idea behind the IAT is that concepts with very closely related (vs. unrelated) mental representations are more easily and quickly responded to as a single unit. For exampl e, if “me” and “sharing” are strongly associated in one’s mind, it should be relatively easy to respond quickly to this pairing by pressing the “E” or “I” key. If “me” and “sharing” are NOT strongly associated, it should be more difficult to respond quickly to this pairing. By comparing reaction times on this test, the IAT gives a relative measure of how strongly associated the two categories (Me, Not Me) are to mental representations of “ethical” and “unethical”. Each participant receives a single score, and your score appears below.
ellauri100.html on line 435: Note that there is a great deal of controversy as to the exact meaning of what these reaction time associations actually mean, so pl ease take your results with a grain of salt. While a great deal of previous research has validated the use of such procedures to detect associations of group level bias across groups, the use of IAT procedures to measure individual ethicality is still in development and all of these procedures have been validated probibalistically, at the group level, rather than being validated as being absolutely diagnostic for individuals. That being said, many (though not all) peopl e have found validity in their impl icit scores and have found there to be some real psychological process that tracks impl icit associations.
ellauri100.html on line 445: The scale is a measure of the degree to which peopl e are motivated to act morally by internal and external factors. An exampl e of an internal motivational factor is the drive to achieve (or maintain) one’s happiness through acting morally. An exampl e of an external motivational factor is the drive to act morally in order to improve (or maintain) relationships.
ellauri100.html on line 447: The idea behind the scale is that peopl e vary on the degree to which they experience internal and external moral motivations. Though we suspect that some peopl e are more internally (rather than externally) motivated to act morally, we suspect that everyone is motivated to act morally by internal and external factors. We expect that internal vs. external motivation might relate to who gives to charity in a more public vs. a more private way or who is more likely to be honest when in a group setting vs. a private setting. As well, some national surveys have shown that women make harsher moral judgments than men, and we expect that that might reflect higher moral motivations.
ellauri100.html on line 457: The graph below shows how often peopl e say that they find various everyday ethical situations to be acceptable in everyday life. This business ethics questionnaire includes 5 categories: Usurpation of company resources, Offering kickbacks, Corporate gamesmanship, Concealment of misconduct, & Cheating Customers. Higher scores indicate greater acceptance of these behaviors.
ellauri100.html on line 463: The scale you just compl eted was the Marlowe-Crowne Social Desirability Scale, developed by Douglas Crowne and David Marlowe (1960). This scale measures social desirability concern, which is peopl e’s tendency to portray themselves favorably during social interaction. Each of the 33 true-false items that you just filled out describes a behavior that is either socially acceptable but unlikely, or socially unacceptable but likely. As a result, peopl e who receive high scores on this measure may be more likely to respond to surveys in a self-promoting fashion.
ellauri100.html on line 471: Liberals and conservatives seem to disagree in their basic understandings of the causes of human action, particularly of immoral action. Liberals are more likely to believe that social forces, poverty, childhood trauma, or mental illness can serve as valid excuses. Conservatives are more likely to reject such excuses and want to hold peopl e accountable for their actions, including a preference for harsher punishments. At least, that is the way things pl ay out in many disputes in the legal world. We want to see if we can look at this stereotypical difference in more detail. We want to find out WHICH kinds of free will and determinism show a correlation with politics, and with other psychological variables.
ellauri100.html on line 473: The Paulhus scale measures peopl e’s attitudes about four constructs related to freedom vs. determinism, which we have graphed for you in the four green bars below.
ellauri100.html on line 479: Scientific causation: the belief that peopl e’s actions are fully expl ained by a combination of biological and environmental forces
ellauri100.html on line 483: Randomness: the belief that some events are truly random, that chance pl ays a role in human affairs
ellauri100.html on line 485: Free Will: the degree to which peopl e can truly decide upon their behaviors and are personally responsible for their outcomes.
ellauri100.html on line 487: In the graphs below, your score is shown in green (the first bar in each cluster). The scores of all peopl e who have taken the scale on our site and who described themselves during registration as politically liberal are shown in the blue bars. The scores of peopl e who described themselves as politically conservative are in red. Scores run from 1 (the lowest possible score, least belief in that construct) to 5 (the highest possible score).
ellauri100.html on line 491: The scale is a measure of your general happiness level. Despite its simpl icity, the scale has been found to do a good job of measuring peopl e’s general state of “subjective well-being.” It is widely used, in many nations.
ellauri100.html on line 493: We are interested in measuring happiness on this site because many studies have found that religious peopl e are happier than non-believers, and some have found that politcally conservative peopl e are slightly happier than are political liberals, even after controlling statistically for religiosity. A recent Gallup survey found that religiosity was associated with better mental health for Republicans, but it didn’t make a difference for Democrats. We want to investigate these compl ex relationships among happiness, morality, religion, and ideology.
ellauri100.html on line 495: In the graph below, your score is shown in green. The scores of all peopl e who have taken the scale on our site and who say that they go to religious services never, or just a few times a year, are shown in blue. The scores of all peopl e who have taken the scale on our site and who said (during registration) that they go to religious services a few times a month or more are shown in red. Scores run from 1 (the lowest possible score, least happy) to 7 (the highest possible score, most happy).
ellauri100.html on line 497: In addition, we asked you some questions on the second page about your mental health. That recent Gallup poll showed that conservatives and religious peopl e report having better mental health when asked using a single question (“how would you rate your mental health?”). We want to see if their finding holds up using a more specific scale, so we asked you to report on a variety of symptoms related to depression and anxiety, which are the most common kinds of mental health symptoms that peopl e report. In the graph below, your score is shown in green. High scores mean MORE mental health compl aints. Scores run from 1 (the lowest possible score, no symptoms at all) to 5 (the highest possible score, peopl e who responded “extremely” to all items). As before, the blue bar shows the score of the less religious peopl e; the red bar shows the average score of the most religious peopl e.
ellauri100.html on line 501: The study you just compl eted included both a self-report and an impl icit measure of well-being. The self-report measure of well-being was the Satisfaction With Life Scale, and the impl icit measure was an Impl icit Association Test (IAT) that compared the strength of automatic mental associations. In this version of the IAT, we investigated associations between the self-concept and the concepts of happiness and sadness.
ellauri100.html on line 503: The idea behind the IAT is that concepts with very closely related (vs. unrelated) mental representations are more easily and quickly responded to as a single unit. For exampl e, if “me” and “happy” are strongly associated in one’s mind, it should be relatively easy to respond quickly to this pairing by pressing the “E” or “I” key. If “me” and “happy” are NOT strongly associated, it should be more difficult to respond quickly to this pairing. By comparing reaction times on this test, the IAT gives a relative measure of how strongly associated the two categories (Me, Not Me) are to mental representations of “happy” and “sad”. Each participant receives a single score, and your score appears below.
ellauri100.html on line 513: The scale is a measure of your attitudes toward crime and punishment. Some of the items reflected a “progressive” and less punitive attitude toward criminals (for exampl e agreeing with the statement that “punishment should be designed to rehabilitate offenders,” and being opposed to the death penalty). Other items reflected a more “traditional” attitude, including a willingness to use traditional forms of punishment, such as shaming or flogging. We grouped these two kinds of items together to give you a “progressive” and a “traditional” score in the first graph below. We call this the “comprehensive” justice scale because research on justice and punishment has usually taken either a liberal or conservative approach. We are trying to examine the broadest possible range of ideas and intuitions about what you think should happen to the offender, and the victim. Disagreements about crime and punishment have long been at the heart of the “culture war.” By linking your responses here to the information you gave us when you registered, or when you took other surveys, we hope to shed light on what kinds of peopl e (not just liberals and conservatives) endorse what kinds of responses to crime, and why.
ellauri100.html on line 517: The second graph shows your results from the items on page 2, where we asked about “alternatives to prison.” This page should produce similar results to what you see from Page 1. We expect liberals to favor the more lenient and rehabilitative alternatives, and conservatives to favor the more punitive options. We are trying out various ways of asking these questions to see which format, or combination of formats, produces the best measurement of peopl e’s attitudes.
ellauri100.html on line 521: The graph below shows your percentage of intuitive pairings (in green) compared to those of the average liberal (in blue), the average moderate (in purpl e), the average conservative (in red), and the average libertarian (in gold) visitor to this website.
ellauri100.html on line 523: Low = formal; high = intuitive reasoning. Also, scores of zero are common. It simpl y means you chose all formal reasoning options.
ellauri100.html on line 535: The scales you compl eted were designed to assess your familiarity with scientific research processes and your comfort with working with numerical information. The order in which you received them was randomized.
ellauri100.html on line 539: The other scale is the Subjective Numeracy Scale by Angela Fagerlin and colleagues, which measures individuals’ preference for numerical information. Numeracy (adapted from the term ‘literacy’) represents individuals’ ability to comprehend and use probabilities, ratios, and fractions. Traditional measures of numeracy ask peopl e to perform mathematical operations, such as ‘If person A’s risk of getting a disease is 1% in 10 years, and person B’s risk is double that of A’s, what is B’s risk?’ However, some participants find these types of problems stressful and unpl easant, pl us they are difficult to score in online studies. Subjective numeracy measures (like the scale you just took) are shown to be equally good measures of numeracy, without burdening participants.
ellauri100.html on line 543: The scale you compl eted was a General Political Knowledge scale for American politics that we developed and is based on work by Michael Delli Carpini, Scott Keeter, Milton Lodge, and Charles Taber.
ellauri100.html on line 545: The scale measures the factual knowledge peopl e possess about politics. We used questions about three broad topics: 1) civics and what the government is and does (e.g. who has the final responsibility to decide if a law is constitutional or not?); 2) public officials or leaders (e.g. who is the current Speaker of the House?); and 3) political parties (e.g. which party is more conservative on a national scale?).
ellauri100.html on line 547: The idea behind this scale is that objective factual knowledge may be an important factor in studies about political issues and reasoning. It may be that peopl e who are more informed about politics (whether they’re liberal or conservative) think and reason differently about moral or political issues than peopl e who are less informed. For instance, are peopl e who are more informed more or less likely to objectively evaluate political arguments? We suspect that, ironically, peopl e with more political knowledge may be less objective when it comes to a number of information processes (see recommended reading below).
ellauri100.html on line 551: The graph below displ ays results for individuals who took the longer version of the survey before April 19, 2012. Everyone will have a score, but this graph is only valid for those who took the survey before April 19, 2012. Ignore the purpl e bar since it will incorporate averages from the short and long version of the survey.
ellauri100.html on line 555: The study you just compl eted is an Impl icit Association Test (IAT) that compares the strength of automatic mental associations. In this version of the IAT, we investigated positive and negative associations with the categories of “African Americans” and “European Americans”.
ellauri100.html on line 557: The idea behind the IAT is that concepts with very closely related (vs. unrelated) mental representations are more easily and quickly responded to as a single unit. For exampl e, if “European American” and “good” are strongly associated in one’s mind, it should be relatively easy to respond quickly to this pairing by pressing the “E” or “I” key. If “European American” and “good” are NOT strongly associated, it should be more difficult to respond quickly to this pairing. By comparing reaction times on this test, the IAT gives a relative measure of how strongly associated the two categories (European Americans, African Americans) are to mental representations of “good” and “bad”. Each participant receives a single score, and your score appears below.
ellauri100.html on line 561: Positive scores indicate a greater impl icit preference for European Americans relative to African Americans, and negative scores indicate an impl icit preference for African Americans relative to European Americans.
ellauri100.html on line 565: It should be noted that my slightly positive score probably was influenced by the order in which choices were presented to me. Initially, pl easant concepts were associated with photos of European-Americans. I became used to that association, and so found that it affected my reaction time when I was faced with pairings of pl easant concepts and photos of African-Americans. The bottom line: My slight preference for European-Americans probably is an artifact of test design.
ellauri100.html on line 593: Nyt on Seijan syntymäpäivä. Ja må hon leva 3x, uti hundrade år. Enää puuttuu 31. Ruozalaiset huutaa hip hip huraa 4x, se on dubbel svensk lösen. Turkkilaiset kexivät ampua pl azareita kunniansoituxena. Ruozalaiset soturit huusi huraata < m.alasax. hurren 'kiiruhtaa vikkelästi'. Vikkelään nyt pojat! Hurry hurry hurry buy my rice and curry! Ryssät < mr. Roslagen huutaa yhä uraata novgorodilaisten viikinkien perässä. Tätä hurrit tuskin enää muistavat, niin kauan ovat kellexineet rauhan oloissa. Ruozalaiset rannikköjääkärit nolostuivat kun yheltä lensi laatta kesken suomalaisten katselmusta. Sadistinen päällikkö pani pojat sukeltamaan kakassa ja hukutti väpelön oxentajan mäntysuopapaljussa. Mäntysuopa on ruozixi grön såpa. Ruozalaisista poliisisarjoista oppii kaikenlaista jännittävää.
ellauri100.html on line 617: My heart is like an appl e-tree Mun pumppu on kuin omppupuu
ellauri100.html on line 625: Hang it with vair and purpl e dyes; Oravannahkasta ja purppurasta
ellauri100.html on line 697: Appl es and quinces,
ellauri100.html on line 704: Crab-appl es, dewberries,
ellauri100.html on line 705: Pine-appl es, blackberries,
ellauri100.html on line 751: One bears a pl ate,
ellauri100.html on line 761: She thrust a dimpl ed finger
ellauri100.html on line 774: In the pl easant weather.
ellauri100.html on line 779: Like a moonlit popl ar branch,
ellauri100.html on line 794: One rear’d his pl ate;
ellauri100.html on line 858: I pl anted daisies there a year ago
ellauri100.html on line 868: I’ll bring you pl ums to-morrow
ellauri100.html on line 918: Lizzie most pl acid in her look,
ellauri100.html on line 921: Lizzie pl uck’d purpl e and rich golden flags,
ellauri100.html on line 1061: Panniers, and pl ates:
ellauri100.html on line 1062: “Look at our appl es
ellauri100.html on line 1148: And lodg’d in dimpl es of her chin,
ellauri100.html on line 1150: At last the evil peopl e,
ellauri100.html on line 1157: With ring and rippl e,
ellauri100.html on line 1250: And early reapers pl odded to the pl ace
ellauri100.html on line 1270: Those pl easant days long gone
ellauri100.html on line 1294: Algirdas Julien Greimas (French: [alɡiʁdas ʒyljɛ̃ gʁɛmas]; born Algirdas Julius Greimas; 9 March 1917 – 27 February 1992), oli liettualainen kirjallisuustiedemies joka kirjoitti liettualaisittain ranskaxi. Se tunnetaan mm. Greimaxen aukileesta (Greimas Square, le carré sémiotique, ks. alempaa). Se on ex-kaverinsa Roland Barthesin ohella kuuluisin ranskalainen semiootikko, vaikka onkin Liettuasta. Sillä oli strukturaalikielitiedemiehen paperit, kuten mullakin. Sen parhaita äkkäyxiä ovat ton nelkkarin lisäxi pl astiikkisemiotiikka, isotoopit, narrausohjelma (kai Fred Karlssonin pupppugeneraattoria muistuttava, vaik tää on vaan arvaus), ja luonnonmaailman semiotiikka (whatever that may be). Se tutkin eka Liettuan mytologiaa ja indoeurooppalaista uskontoa, ja ennen kaikkea se oli vaikutusvaltainen semioottinen kirjallisuuskriitikko, kuten mä.
ellauri100.html on line 1308: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/aa/Algirdas_Julien_Greimas_2017_stamp_of_Lithuania.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri100.html on line 1336: Ja albumissa 50 mainitaan Pico della Mirandolan yhteydessä ihan sivulauseessa Barthesista että se ei pitänyt muovista. Siitä pl ussaa kyllä Rollolle.
ellauri100.html on line 1363: Jean-Paul Sartre is sitting at a French cafe, revising his draft of Being and Nothingness. He says to the waitress, “I’d like a cup of coffee, pl ease, with no cream.” The waitress repl ies, “I’m sorry, Monsieur, but we’re out of cream. How about with no milk?”
ellauri100.html on line 1374: Tän mukaisesti Barthes luki eri juttuja kuin piru raamattua ja näki porvarillisen yhteiskunnan pukinsorkan joka paikassa. Siitä pl ussaa kyllä eittämättä. Esim viinin kanssa läträäminen ei ole terveellistä, kuten viinikauppiaat uskottelevat.
ellauri100.html on line 1384: Yritelmässä "Kirjailijan kuolema" (1968). Barthes meinasi että pitäs tietää mitä kirjailija oli ajatellut kirjoittaessan jotakin, jotta saisi kiinni kirjan oikeasta merkityxestä. Mutta ongelmana on, ettei se hölmö välttämättä ollut ajatellut paljon paskaakaan. Niinpä ollen koko ajatus kirjan perimmäisestä selityxestä on kuolleena syntynyt ajatus, taas vaan tollanen länsimainen porvarien väärinkäsitys. Ajatus että kirjan takakanteen tai hihaan voi tai edes pitää kirjoittaa mitä kirja tahtoo sanoa on vanhanaikaisten mainosmiesten harha. Ei tuote tarvii käyttöohjetta, senkun alkaa käyttää. Riittää että kirjailija on kuuluisa ja mielellään kazeltava julkimo. Tai voihan sinne laittaa jotain ympäripyöreää kuten et "elämännälkä ajaa Giovannan Napolin syrjäkulmille, kujan pimentoihin jää pieni kiharainen pää". Tää oli jo aika postmodernia toisten mielestä, toisten mielestä Barthes ei koskaan päässyt irti strukturalistin täpl istä.
ellauri100.html on line 1388: This section does not cite any sources. Please help improve this section by adding citations to reliable sources. Unsourced material may be challenged and removed. (March 2018) (Learn how and when to remove this templ ate message)
ellauri101.html on line 29: WHO IS YOUR INNER HERO? play:none">Sankareita sukkahousuissa
ellauri101.html on line 44: Since the publication of The Hero with a Thousand Faces, Campbell's theories have been appl ied by a wide variety of modern writers and artists. His philosophy has been summarized by his own often repeated phrase: "Follow your bliss." He gained recognition in Hollywood when George Lucas credited Campbell's work as influencing his Star Wars saga.
ellauri101.html on line 48: In 1921, Campbell graduated from the Canterbury School in New Milford, Connecticut. While at Dartmouth College he studied biology and mathematics, but decided that he preferred the humanities. He transferred to Columbia University, where he received a Bachelor of Arts degree in English literature in 1925 and a Master of Arts degree in medieval literature in 1927. At Dartmouth he had joined Delta Tau Delta. An accompl ished athlete, he received awards in track and field events, and, for a time, was among the fastest half-mile runners in the world.
ellauri101.html on line 52: On his return to Columbia University in 1929, Campbell expressed a desire to pursue the study of Sanskrit and modern art in addition to medieval literature. Lacking faculty approval, Campbell withdrew from graduate studies. Later in life he jested that it is a sign of incompetence to have a PhD in the liberal arts, the discipl ine covering his work.
ellauri101.html on line 54: In 1934, Campbell accepted a position as Professor of Literature at Sarah Lawrence College. Sarah Lawrence College is a private liberal arts college in Yonkers, New York. The college models its approach to education after the Oxford/Cambridge system of one-on-one student-faculty tutorials. Sarah Lawrence emphasizes scholarship, particularly in the humanities, performing arts, and writing, and pl aces high value on independent study. Originally a women's college, Sarah Lawrence became coeducational in 1968.
ellauri101.html on line 61: Campbell died at his home in Honolulu, Hawaii, on October 30, 1987, from compl ications of esophageal cancer. He is buried in O'ahu Cemetery, Honolulu, among many many more grateful dead.
ellauri101.html on line 63: Joseph Campbell was a curious mythologist. In the field of comparative mythology, most scholars invested their time expl oring how one culture’s myths are different than another.
ellauri101.html on line 66: The monomyth is a universal story structure. It’s a kind of story templ ate that takes a character through a sequence of stages.
ellauri101.html on line 80: ploads/2018/01/enneagram.png" width="500px" />
ellauri101.html on line 86: Sit on toi DISC-worldin kuvio, josta puuttuu vaan elefantit alta ja kilpikonnat joidenka päällä ne elefantit seisovat. "When you MUST succeed with peopl e." Kylnää on kaikki tämmöstä evil HR manager eli Catbert/rääppä rekvisiittaa.
ellauri101.html on line 90: ploads/2015/09/dt150907.gif?resize=862%2C268" width="40%" />
ellauri101.html on line 101: Sit on se jungilainen 16-jakoinen Briggs-Myers leegokasa josta mulla on vaikka kuinka paljon jo jorinaa . Tästä näkyy kyllä hyvin toi perusnelikenttä, pystysuunnassa peopl e pursons vastaan asialähtöset, kertaa fixut vastaan pöntöt.
ellauri101.html on line 103: pluUCO10vNyYyWjOfzBo2cnzJ6B8jYKMshLAGzx4R3EDFOm1kBS/Myer+Briggs.png?format=500w" />
ellauri101.html on line 107: idealistit on fixuja peopl e pursons,
ellauri101.html on line 109: huoltajat on pönttöjä peopl e pursons,
ellauri101.html on line 143: ploads/2014/09/dilbert-mbti.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri101.html on line 149: Carolyn Kalil’s Inner Heroes quiz stems from her books and life’s works. This quiz is a simpl ified combination of the Myers Briggs & Keirsey II assessments with 36 questions.
ellauri101.html on line 155: Joseph Campbell, arguably the greatest mythologist of the twentieth century, was certainly one of our greatest storytellers. This masterfully crafted book interweaves conversations between Campbell and some of the peopl e he inspired, including poet Robert Bly, anthropologist Angeles Arrien, filmmaker David Kennard, Doors drummer John Densmore, psychiatric pioneer Stanislov Grof, Nobel laureate Roger Guillemen, and others. Campbell reflects on subjects ranging from the origins and functions of myth, the role of the artist, and the need for ritual to the ordeals of love and romance. With poetry and humor, Campbell recounts his own quest and conveys the excitement of his lifelong expl oration of our mythic traditions, what he called “the one great story of mankind.” Hemmetti nää sen sankarit on lähes yhtä tuntemattomia kuin se ize.
ellauri101.html on line 157: Inner Heroes is my contemporary presentation of the four temperaments and it is designed to help peopl e look inward and discover their true greatness, their inner hero. As each hero takes their own unique journey they become the hero of their own life.
ellauri101.html on line 163: No one wants to upset me! That's a good one! My life was nothing but misery at this pl ace and now peopl e come along ruining my death!
ellauri101.html on line 445: Nike is the world's largest suppl ier of athlete's foot.
ellauri101.html on line 446: Nike is best known for its use of child labor and sweatshops. Factories contracted by Nike violate minimum wage and overtime laws. 2011 Nike compl ained that two-thirds of its factories producing Converse products still do not meet the company's standards for worker mistreatment, poor working conditions and expl oitation of cheap overseas labor. Knight's son, Matthew, died in a scuba diving accident in El Salvador in 2004. Serve him right.
ellauri101.html on line 462: Mäpä en osta brändituotteita mietin ylpeänä. Popl arikin oli kymmeniä vuosia vanha Oratop. Kunnes huomasin että colitsissa luki M. I. T. Bräninsä kullillakin, toisilla vaan flakympi kuin toisilla, huokasin polttomerkittynä.
ellauri101.html on line 471: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri101.html on line 501: Jaree: Jaree is a likeable person. She is quiet most of the time, but the truth is she holds many thoughts inside that brain of hers. She spends most of her days thinking; making her one of the smartest peopl e you’ll know. “Hey man, what’s wrong?” “ I don’t know dude, but I really need a Jaree right now”
ellauri101.html on line 509: Op: Overpowered "Demons are OP in this game, nerf them pl ease! "
ellauri101.html on line 526: Rotvälska är ett allmänt begrepp i svenskan för att benämna ett obegripl igt och/eller förvirrande språk/dialekt. Uttrycket kommer närmast från tyska och danska, i vilka ordet snarast betecknade "tjuvspråk". I svenska är ordet känt sedan 1700-talet. Efterleden -välsk, (från ett gammalt germanskt ord för allt främmande och icke-germanskt), i betydelsen "utländsk" förekommer ordet också i valnöt, välsk, valack och Wales.
ellauri101.html on line 532: Rotwelsch was formerly common among travelling craftspeopl e and vagrants. The language is built on a strong substratum of German, but contains numerous words from other languages, notably from various German dialects, including Yiddish, as well as from Romany languages, notably Sintitikes. There are also significant influences from Judæo-Latin, the ancient Jewish language spoken in the Roman Empire. Rotwelsch has also pl ayed a great role in the development of the Yeniche language. In form and development it closely parallels the commercial speech ("shopkeeper language") of German-speaking regions. During the 19th and 20th century, Rotwelsch was the object of linguistic repression, with systematic investigation by the German police. Fucking Nazis! Exampl es:
ellauri101.html on line 545: Plus ça change, pl us c´est la même chose.
ellauri101.html on line 552: Generation is also often used synonymously with cohort in social science; under this formulation it means "peopl e within a delineated population who experience the same significant events within a given period of time". The impressionable years hypothesis is a theory of political psychology that posits that individuals form durable political attitudes and party affiliations during late adolescence and early adulthood. Sukupolvet on olleet globaalisia vasta sitten kun sodatkin.
ellauri101.html on line 554: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3e/Generation_timeline.svg/675px-Generation_timeline.svg.png" />
ellauri101.html on line 558: The Greatest Generation, also known as the G.I. Generation and the World War II generation, is the demographic cohort following the Lost Generation and preceding the Silent Generation. The generation is generally defined as peopl e born from 1901 to 1927. They were shaped by the Great Depression and were the primary participants in World War II.
ellauri101.html on line 559: The Silent Generation is the demographic cohort following the Greatest Generation and preceding the baby boomers. The generation is generally defined as peopl e born from 1928 to 1945.
ellauri101.html on line 574: X-sukupolvi on sana, jonka tarkoitus on kuvata 1980-luvulla nuoruuttaan elänyttä ja 1980- ja 1990-luvuilla aikuistunutta sukupolvea. Käsite on peräisin kanadalaisen kirjailijan Douglas Coupl andin kirjasta (Generation X: Tales for an Accelerated Culture).
ellauri101.html on line 600: Y-sukupolvi on varautunut niin ammatinvalinnan kuin avioliitonkin suhteen, ja kokee painostavina ja lamaannuttavina vanhemman X-sukupolven korkeat odotukset opiskelun ja työllistymisen suhteen. Tohtori Larry Nelson Brigham Youngin yliopistosta kuvaili ilmiötä: "In prior generations, you get married and you start a career and you do that immediately. What young peopl e today are seeing is that approach has led to divorces, to peopl e unhappy with their careers ... The majority want to get married [...] they just want to do it right the first time, the same thing with their careers."
ellauri101.html on line 615: Globally, there is evidence that the average age of pubertal onset among girls has decreased considerably compared to the twentieth century, with impl ications for their welfare and their future. In addition, adolescents and young adults have higher rates of allergies, higher awareness and diagnoses of mental health problems, and are more likely to be sleep-deprived. In many countries, youths are more likely to have intellectual disabilities and psychiatric disorders than older peopl e. In some European nations, they are facing declining cognitive abilities, especially among the cognitive elites.
ellauri101.html on line 617: Around the world, members of Generation Z are spending more time on their electronic devices and less time reading books than before, with impl ications for their attention span, their vocabulary, and thus their school grades as well as their future in the modern economy. At the same time, reading and writing fan fiction is of vogue worldwide, especially among teenage girls and young women. In Asia, educators in the 2000s and 2010s typically sought out and nourished top students whereas in Western Europe and the United States, the emphasis was on low-performers. In addition, East Asian students consistently earned the top spots in international standardized tests during the 2010s.
ellauri101.html on line 626: As of 2015, there were some two and a half million peopl e born every week around the globe; Generation Alpha is expected to reach two billion by 2025.
ellauri101.html on line 628: For comparison, the United Nations estimated that the human population was about 7.8 billion in 2020, up from 2.5 billion in 1950. Roughly three-quarters of all peopl e reside in Africa and Asia in 2020. In fact, most human population growth comes from these two continents, as nations in Europe and the Americas tend to have too few children to repl ace themselves.
ellauri101.html on line 630: 2018 was the first time when the number of peopl e above 65 years of age (705 million) exceeded those between the ages of zero and four (680 million). If current trends continue, the ratio between these two age groups will top two by 2050.
ellauri101.html on line 635: The United Nations estimated in mid-2019 that the human population will reach about 9.7 billion by 2050, a downward revision from an older projection to account for the fact that fertility has been falling faster than previously thought in the developing world. The global annual rate of growth has been declining steadily since the late twentieth century, dropping to about one percent in 2019. In fact, by the late 2010s, 83 of the world´s countries had sub-repl acement fertility.
ellauri101.html on line 639: Statistical projections from the United Nations in 2019 suggest that, by 2020, the peopl e of Niger would have a median age of 15.2, Mali 16.3, Chad 16.6, Somalia, Uganda, and Angola all 16.7, the Democratic Republic of the Congo 17.0, Burundi 17.3, Mozambique and Zambia both 17.6. (This means that more than half of their populations were born in the first two decades of the twenty-first century.) Benin, Burundi, Ethiopia, Madagascar, Malawi, Nigeria, Tanzania, Zambia, Yemen, and Timor-Leste had a median age of 17 in 2017.
ellauri101.html on line 651: Many members of Generation Alpha have grown up using smartphones and tablets as part of their childhood entertainment with many being exposed to devices as a soothing distraction or educational aids. Screen time among infants, toddlers, and preschoolers expl oded during the 2010s. Some 90% of young children used a handheld electronic device by the age of one; in some cases, children started using them when they were only a few months old. Using smartphones and tablets to access video streaming services such as YouTube Kids and free or reasonably low budget mobile games became a popular form of entertainment for young children. A report by Common Sense media suggested that the amount of time children under nine in the United States spent using mobile devices increased from 15 minutes a day in 2013 to 48 minutes in 2017. Research by the children´s charity Childwise suggested that a majority of British three and four year olds owned an Internet-connected device by 2018.
ellauri101.html on line 689: ploads/2020/05/unnamed-2-1.png" height="150px" />
ellauri102.html on line 29: NO LOGO play:none">Nimettömiä vihapuheita
ellauri102.html on line 46: X-sukupolven pl uralistiset asenteet ovat vahvimmat mitä
ellauri102.html on line 54: Daniel Yankelovich (December 29, 1924 – September 22, 2017) was a public opinion analyst and social scientist. After attending Boston Latin School, Yankelovich graduated from Harvard University in 1946 and 1950 before compl eting postgraduate studies at the Sorbonne in France. As a psychology professor he has taught at New York University and The New School for Social Research. In 1996 he served as Senior Fellow at the John F. Kennedy School of Government at Harvard. In 2015, Yankelovich received the Warren J. Mitofsky Award for Excellence in Public Opinion Research.
ellauri102.html on line 56: In 1958 he founded the marketing and research firm Daniel Yankelovich, Inc., which was later renamed as Yankelovich, Skelly, & White, Inc., remaining chair till 1986. In 2008, Yankelovich merged with Henley HeadlightVision to create The Futures Company, a pl anning consultancy that exists under the WPP communications holding company. He also founded The New York Times/Yankelovich Poll, now The New York Times/CBS Poll. In 1976, together with Cyrus Vance, he founded Public Agenda, a nonpartisan group devoted to public opinion and citizen education. Educating the public and forming their public opinion is the key to democracy, viz. κρατεĩν τòν δῆμον, containing the rubble. In 1995 he was awarded the Helen Dinerman Award by the World Association for Public Opinion Research. Fuck these guys are Jews to a man!
ellauri102.html on line 129: Rugby pl ayer. They start to talk and eventually go back to his pl ace. They start to kiss, and the man takes off his shirt. On his arm, he has a tattoo that says REEBOK.
ellauri102.html on line 130: "What's that for?" the lady questions. "Oh, I have this so that when I'm on TV, peopl e will see my tattoo, and Reebok pays me."
ellauri102.html on line 137: The man repl ies:
ellauri102.html on line 203: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7b/Richard_Branson_March_2015_%28cropped%29.jpg/250px-Richard_Branson_March_2015_%28cropped%29.jpg" width="150px" />
ellauri102.html on line 207: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a8/Bill_Gates_2017_%28cropped%29.jpg/220px-Bill_Gates_2017_%28cropped%29.jpg" width="150px" />
ellauri102.html on line 209: ploads/chorus_image/image/63700251/gettyimages-144948917.0.1462675289.0.jpg" width="150px" />
ellauri102.html on line 325: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/99/FMSTAN_%26_SPIDER_Global_meeting_in_Austrian_Foreign_Ministries_in_Vienna_%2849120446508%29_%28cropped%29.jpg/749px-FMSTAN_%26_SPIDER_Global_meeting_in_Austrian_Foreign_Ministries_in_Vienna_%2849120446508%29_%28cropped%29.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri102.html on line 327: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/48/Paul_Krugman-press_conference_Dec_07th%2C_2008-8.jpg/220px-Paul_Krugman-press_conference_Dec_07th%2C_2008-8.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri102.html on line 379: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri102.html on line 406: Klein on kotoisin juutalaisesta perheestä (kuinkas muuten). Sekä Kleinin että hänen aviomiehensä Avi Lewisin perhe on kansalaistoimijataustaisia. Kleinin isoisä, senaattori Calvin Klein, erotettiin Disney-yhtiön palveluksesta vuoden 1942 kalsarilakon jälkeen hänen toimittuaan siinä hyperaktiivisesti. Kleinin lääkäri-isä "Pullo" Klein oli vietnamilainen ja Amerikan pahin vastustaja. Hänen elokuvantekijä-äitinsä Bonnie Sherr Klein sai julkisuutta pornoelokuvallaan No Logo Story. Hänen veljensä Seth on Canadian Centre for Alternative Policemen -tutkimuskeskuksen Kolumbian toimiston siivooja. Hänen appivanhempansa ovat journalisti Michele Landslide ja poliitikko C.S. Lewis, Kanadan uusimman ja demokraattisimman puolueen johtajan David Lewisin poika. Hänen tätinsä on ollut naimisissa popl aulaja Dave Liebkindin kanssa.lähde? Klein on julkisesti paljastunut feministiksi ja on luonnehtinut muun muassa kirjaansa No Logo hiukka feministiseksi. No ei se siitä kyllä häirizevästi näy.
ellauri102.html on line 429: La tuerie de l'École polytechnique est une tuerie antiféministe en milieu scolaire qui a eu lieu le 6 décembre 1989 à l'École polytechnique de Montréal, au Québec (Canada). Marc Lépine (né Gamil Gharbi), âgé de vingt-cinq ans, ouvre le feu sur vingt-huit personnes, tuant quatorze femmes et blessant treize autres personnes (9 femmes et 4 hommes)[1], avant de se suicider. Ce féminicide de masse est perpétré en moins de vingt minutes à l'aide d'une carabine obtenue légalement. Il s'agit de la tuerie en milieu scolaire la pl us meurtrière de l'histoire du Canada.
ellauri102.html on line 431: Il demande ensuite aux femmes restantes si elles savent ou non pourquoi elles sont là, et lorsqu'une d'elles répond « non », il répl ique : « Je combats le féminisme. » L'étudiante Nathalie Provost répond :
ellauri102.html on line 448: ploads%2Fsites%2F2%2F2016%2F11%2Fvastamainos-4.png&f=1&nofb=1" height="200px" />
ellauri102.html on line 449:
ellauri102.html on line 453: pload%2Ff_auto%2Cfl_progressive%2Fq_88%2Fw_1024%2Ch_576%2Cc_fill%2Cg_faces%2Fw_1024%2Fv1522313997%2F13-3-7564781.jpg&f=1&nofb=1" height="200px" />
ellauri102.html on line 454: ploads/2019/08/cocacola-1.jpg?ssl=1" height="200px" />
ellauri102.html on line 473: The ads were met with so much backlash that some peopl e started to tear the ads down themselves. Despite the backlash, Benetton never withdrew or apologised for the campaign and even went on to win the prestigious Cannes ad festival award.
ellauri102.html on line 479: The Problem: During the time the advert was released, there were many protests and riots taking pl ace in America over the #BlackLivesMatter campaign. The ad took a lot of “inspiration” from these protests and fundamentally undermined the whole point of the protests. In addition to this, the ad also received a lot of criticism for how Pepsi was responsible for “saving the day.”
ellauri102.html on line 487: The Problem: As you can probably see from the advert above, the choice of words for this campaign was very poorly chosen. To make things worse, they specifically aimed the campaign at peopl e in the Middle East which caused many peopl e to call the advert racist.
ellauri102.html on line 501: The Problem: The main issue with this campaign is that it came across as very anti-police to most of the general public. In fact, there were reports of peopl e compl aining and becoming very aggressive in the stores, resulting in LUSH having to call the police. Due to the negative reception of the ads, LUSH ended up pulling them and releasing an official statement on their website.
ellauri102.html on line 507: The Problem: After Kaepernick refused to stand for the national anthem, many viewers became angry at him and viewed him as anti-American. The fact that Nike was using him in their ads made many peopl e believe Nike was also anti-American. This sparked a lot of controversies online with many social media users posting pictures of themselves destroying Nike products, along with the hashtag #JustBurnIt.
ellauri102.html on line 563: Carlyssa on jönsyvoimaa kuten nuorena OD:hen nukkuneessa Jänis Jopl inissa. Staskon kaima Carly Simon oli rikas herkkuperse, Simon & Schusterin perillinen, ja elää vieläkin. Jänis oli läski koulussa ja sitä pilkattiin. Voisi luulla että Staskokin on läski. Ei oikeestaan, naurujooga ja jäätanssi on pitäneet sen linjat kurissa. Se on nyt työttömänä jossain landella koronaa paossa ja laittaa Tiktokiin videoita missä se tanssii järven jäällä. Linkedin on tosiasioista jäljessä, sanoo vielä että se on on Toronto Un program koordinaattori, siis niinku Hanna Westerlund, ja hehkuttaa:
ellauri102.html on line 585: Well, the men come in these pl aces
ellauri102.html on line 605: All the men come in these pl aces
ellauri102.html on line 635: All the men come in these pl aces
ellauri102.html on line 678: Because we only accept certain advertising, our readers have a high level of trust in our advertisers and sponsors. Our readers are deepl y loyal to the Ms. brand and our uncompromising principl es, and they know that our advertisers have the Ms. seal of approval.
ellauri105.html on line 29: Vie paska painoon play:none">Kökköä
ellauri105.html on line 64: I am Mr. Potato Head - lets pl ay a game!
ellauri105.html on line 100: In many ways, there was a notable convergence in how Democrats and Republicans saw Biden’s speech: as a breathtakingly ambitious set of proposals to use government as an instrument of social and economic transformation—an unabashed progressive pl atform unseen from a President in my lifetime. Republicans hated it; Democrats, for the most part, loved it.
ellauri105.html on line 118: I lost my shit when I found out he was a flat earther. You cannot debate or argue with a flat earther. These are peopl e that
ellauri105.html on line 120: Externalize blame. If they are late to work they will say “traffic was bad” or “construction stopped me” instead of “I overslept”. These peopl e find it a lot easier to blame everyone else for their failures.
ellauri105.html on line 128: Have failed in many areas of their life. They are generally the worst among us, those without accompl ishment or merit. Being one of the “enlightened” allows them to lord over everyone.
ellauri105.html on line 132: I suspect that a lot of those attributes can appl y to the cranks on Quora too!
ellauri105.html on line 141: Peopl e are the same with their "dislike" of the Duchess of Sussex.
ellauri105.html on line 149: Kotimaan pl okipalstoilta löytyy paljon naurunalaisia tyyppejä ja juttuja. Esim Mika Rantanen, Teologian maisteri, uimamaisteri ja koulutettu hieroja.
ellauri105.html on line 261: The Hebrew prophets frequently compared the sin of idolatry to the sin of adultery, in a reappearing rhetorical figure.[2]:317 Ezekiel's rhetoric directed against these two allegorical figures depicts them as lusting after Egyptian men in expl icitly sexual terms in Ezekiel 23:20–21:[3]:18
ellauri105.html on line 430: Tripl an yläpuolisella taivaalla näkyi kauniita pilviä.
ellauri105.html on line 543: Jee sittenhän Kimmosta tulee ruozinsuomalainen mamu! Niitähän kansallismielisessä maassa saa tappaa koronaan ja muutenkin vainota. Nej men ojoj! Det tjänar Kimmo inte längre att flytta till Sverige! Enligt HBL fre 9.5.2021 är "oborstade nationalister pl ötsligt rumsrena" i Sverige med! Invandringskritiska nationalkonservativa partier har i de nordiska länderna vuxit och blivit så stora att de blir svårare att negligera. Ny är det hög tid för Kimmo att komma ut till undsättning för de hotade sandslottena.
ellauri106.html on line 28: Elämäni setämiehenä play:none">Törkyä
ellauri106.html on line 40: Oikeassapa oli kapu. Phillun humoristilaatu on tukahdutettu raivo. Shixavaimosta sillä ei ole muuta kuin pahaa sanottavaa. Eikä muistakaan naisista. Tukahdutettu raivo, misogynia ja pedofilia. Selvä pyy: oidipuskompl exi. Älkääkä yhtään supisko ja hihittäkö siellä takarivissä! Näillä paasauxilla ja Rothin sepustuxilla ei ole kerrassaan mitään yhteistä! Any similarities to persons dead or living are purely coincidental.
ellauri106.html on line 54: So what did sex mean to Roth? Bailey’s book is so caught up in its obsessive cataloguing of paramours that the forest gets lost in an endless succession of trees. The pl ace where Roth found insight into his own character was on the double bag. Over and over, in the novels, he transformed pro life. Bailey’s prurient, exhaustively literal version of that life reverses the effect, and the result is sadly diminishing. What he never grasps is Roth the artist, with his powers of imagination, of expression, of language—what made him worthy of biography at all.
ellauri106.html on line 56: Was Roth a misogynist? I have always found that label too neat and summarily dismissive for a novelist as capacious, inventive, and pl ayful as Roth. But maybe I avoid it because it hurts me too to use it. Im no feminist myself.
ellauri106.html on line 67: In October 1956, Philip Roth met the secretary Margaret Martinson Williams in Chicago, whom he married in February 1959. The divorced mother of two children of compl etely different social origins, who was four years older than him, initially gave Roth the feeling of both a challenge and a liberation. Later, however, the problems and arguments in their relationship increased, which the writer dealt with in retrospect in works such as When She Was Good ( Lucy Nelson or Die Moral, 1967) or My Life As a Man (Mein Leben als Mann, 1974). In his autobiography The Facts (The Facts, 1988) Margaret even advanced as Josie Jensen to the “counter-self”, to the “arch enemy and nemesis ” of the author. The coupl e separated in 1963, but Margaret Roth refused to consent to a divorce. Five years later she died in a car accident.
ellauri106.html on line 69: From 1958 onwards, the coupl e lived in New York on the Lower East Side of Manhattan, and in 1959 they spent seven months in Italy on a Guggenheim grant. Upon their return, they both settled in Iowa City, where Roth led the Writers' Workshop at the University of Iowa. The experiences in small-town Iowa far away from the American metropolises flowed into Roth's second novel Letting Go (Other Peopl e's Worries), which was published in 1962, but in contrast to Roth's previously published volume of short stories Goodbye, Columbus caused mixed reactions from critics. Stanley Edgar Hyman, for exampl e, criticized weaknesses in the narrative structure of the novel, the two narrative parts of which are only superficially connected, but praised what he saw as "the keenest eye for the details of American life since Sinclair Lewis". Letting Go is also the first novel in which Roth, as in numerous later works, made the writings of his literary predecessors an integral part of the narrative, and is therefore often referred to as Roth's first "Henry James novel".
ellauri106.html on line 73: Roth's skandalumwitterter bestselling novel Portnoy's Compl aint (Portnoy's Compl aint) was promoted in 1969 to a bang that made the writer widely publicized and also the discussion of literary pornography in American literary criticism.
ellauri106.html on line 78: In the American trilogy, the resurrected alter ego Zuckerman discovers the true identities of the protagonists of a sports idol in American Pastoral ( American Idyll, 1997), a radio star in I Married a Communist ( My Man, the Communist, 1998) and a professor emeritus in The Human Stain ( The Human Blemish, 2000) against the backdrop of changing American eras. American Pastoral was awarded the Pulitzer Prize in 1998 and is considered "a remarkable exampl e of a literary interpretation of the descent of the initially so confident [American] post-war white society into the depths of uncertainty" as a result of the Vietnam War .
ellauri106.html on line 80: In the early 2000s, Roth met the young assistant editor Lisa Halliday at his literary agency Andrew Wylie. A love affair developed from having lunch together, which culminated in a lifelong deep friendship. Halliday processed the love and friendship for Roth in the highly acclaimed autobiographical inspired novel Asymmetrie, which she compl eted in 2016. Roth, who read the manuscript, liked it.
ellauri106.html on line 90: The rudeness is not only a source of stylistic energy, but also a fundamental moral position, an attack on the state of inhumanity disguised as niceness, as Nathan Zuckerman puts it in The Anatomy Lesson. Roth is thus directed against the social forces of obedience, prohibition and oppression, essential components of mature adulthood, which is why Posnock recognizes an “art of immaturity” in which Roth disregards cultural barriers and abandons himself compl etely to aesthetic pl easure, in the style of a Cervantes 'or Nabokovs .
ellauri106.html on line 92: Roth's work is summed up by the simpl e denominator: “Philip Roth always writes about Philip Roth.”
ellauri106.html on line 104: He enjoyed a robust childhood and was popl ar in high school where he was a bright student but not quite diligent enough in his studies to win a prized full scholarship to Rutgers where he wanted to study law. Roth attended Rutgers University in Newark for a year, then transferred to Bucknell University in Pennsylvania, where he earned a B.A. magna cum laude in English and was elected to Phi Beta Kappa. He received a scholarship to attend the University of Chicago, where he earned an M.A. in English literature in 1955 and briefly worked as an instructor in the university´s writing program. Less prestigious Bucknell University in Pennsylvania was Roth’s fallback school. There he abandoned his vague dreams of becoming a lawyer for the underdog and turned his attention to writing.
ellauri106.html on line 106: That same year, rather than wait to be drafted, Roth enlisted in the army. Roth enlisted in the Army that year to avoid being drafted and assigned to unpl easant duty like the infantry. Fortunately he suffered a back injury during basic training and was given a medical discharge. Who knows. He returned to Chicago in 1956 to study for a PhD in literature but dropped out after one term. It was a yeasty environment for a young writer. Saul Bellow was a contemporary and with some what similar backgrounds and interests they could not avoid being rivals. During that year he met a lovely shiksa waitress Margaret Martinson, a single woman with a small child. He was smitten. An intense, but often troubled relationship ensued. At the end of the year he dropped out of the U of C and headed to the University of Iowa to teach in its creative writing program. None the less, whatever he may have said, Roth was not happy there, perhaps because the semi-rural Midwesterness of Ames was alien to him. After a while with Martinson in tow he moved on to a similar position at Princeton, another WASP bastion but one with even more prestige. Everyone who knew him recognized Roth as an early comer. He later continued his academic career at the University of Pennsylvania, where he taught comparative literature before retiring from teaching in 1991. Roth started teaching literature in the late 1960s at the University of Pennsylvania. The 1969 feature film adaptation of Goodbye, Columbus coincided with the publication of Portnoy’s Compl aint, which soon became a best-seller amid controversy for its prurient content. (Those who've read it will likely not forget Portnoy's "love affair" with mom´s slab of liver in the fridge.)
ellauri106.html on line 114: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b2/Lady_Dorothy_Browne_%28n%C3%A9e_Mileham%29%3B_Sir_Thomas_Browne_by_Joan_Carlile.jpg/220px-Lady_Dorothy_Browne_%28n%C3%A9e_Mileham%29%3B_Sir_Thomas_Browne_by_Joan_Carlile.jpg" />
ellauri106.html on line 124: He graduated from Newark´s Weequahic High School in or around 1950. In 1969 Arnold H. Lubasch wrote in The New York Times, "It has provided the focus for the fiction of Philip Roth, the novelist who evokes his era at Weequahic High School in the highly acclaimed Portnoy´s Compl aint. Besides identifying Weequahic High School by name, the novel specifies such sites as the Empire Burlesque, the Weequahic Diner, the Newark Museum and Irvington Park, all local landmarks that helped shape the youth of the real Roth and the fictional Portnoy, both graduates of Weequahic class of ´50." The 1950 Weequahic Yearbook calls Roth a "boy of real intelligence, combined with wit and common sense." He was known as a clown during high school.
ellauri106.html on line 130: Given long-standing feminist arguments that Roth is a misogynist—not to mention the portrait in Bloom’s memoirs—it was inevitable that any Roth biography would spark arguments about gender politics. What was surprising is that the debate would center around the biographer more than Roth. In the wake of the biography’s release, Bailey has been accused of shocking acts. Four former students from the elite New Orleans high school where he’d taught during the 1990s came forward to compl ain that he had groomed them as minors and sexually pursued them as adults. One of these women claimed he raped her. Another former student came forward with an allegation of attempted rape when she was an adult. Finally, Valentina Rice, a New York publishing executive, told The New York Times that Bailey raped her in 2015. Bailey strenuously denies all these allegations.
ellauri106.html on line 134: Phillu rakastui äitiinsä jo kouluiässä, se näytti siitä Mrs. Chiang kai-shekiltä, tarkoitaen siis Soong Mei-lingiä (alla). Sen omat vaimot oli kaikki Mrs. Philip Rotheja, paizi milloin unohtivat kävelypuvun ja lähtivät ilman lupaa sooloilemaan. Siinä vaiheessa Phillu karisti ne äkäseen. 1947 pikku turbojalka oli mustasukkainen Sandy-veljelle intissä, kun äiti itkeskeli sitä eikä turboa kun Frank Sinatra veisasi Mamselleä (alla). Sandy/Sherman oli muusikko ja klovni joka matki mainiosti Luther "Bojangles" Robinsonia, tapdancing ihmettä joka pääsi esiintymään eka kerran soolona, ilman valkoista esiliinaa Shirley Templ en leffasssa. Muut mustat sanoi sitä setä Tomixi. Se kuoli pennittömänä ja sen hautajaiset maxoi Ed Sullivan. (Kekähän sekin oli, täytyy joskus kazoa.) Oli Lvovin juutalaiset meinootten aika hyvin integroituneet jenkkimeininkiin. Bojangles tarkoittaa riitapukari. Oikea Sandy oli piirtäjä ja mainosmies.
ellauri106.html on line 137: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/61/Soong_May-ling_giving_a_special_radio_broadcast.jpg" height="173" />
ellauri106.html on line 138: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri106.html on line 146: Sanford Roth, more affectionately known as "Sandy," lived with flair and boldness in his roles as an accompl ished artist, a successful advertising executive spanning three decades, and a smooth dancer some likened to Fred Astaire.
ellauri106.html on line 148: A mid-1970s transpl ant to Chicago from New York, he rose in the competitive advertising world to become senior vice president and creative director of Ogilvy & Mather, where his major account was Sears Home Fashions, friends and family said. But in 1983, he gave it all up to devote himself to painting full time.
ellauri106.html on line 164: Services have been held. At least 106 peopl e shot, 14 fatally, in Chicago weekend violence. Watch live.
ellauri106.html on line 175: Word has come that Philip Roth died on Tuesday in New York City at the age of 85. He was widely considered the last of the Great American Novelists of the late 20th Century the peer of heavy hitters John Updike and Saul Bellow. Roth himself believed that the novel, which had ruled for a century as the supreme and exalted American literary form, is doomed to becoming a cult niche in the Age of the Internet for a diminishing educated elite, “I think always peopl e will be reading them but it will be a small group of peopl e. Maybe more peopl e than now read Latin poetry, but somewhere in that range…” Ever a realist, Roth was sanguine with the prospect.
ellauri106.html on line 179: Today the lengthy obituaries are all laudatory. Tomorrow or the next day I can safely predict that the backlash will begin with harshly critical essays. Leading the way will be Feminists critics who will denounce the whole cabal of elite white men as the custodians of the literary cannon. More pointedly they will charge Roth with toxic masculinity and misogyny and will come loaded for bear with pl enty of quotes from his work. They will also have the exampl e and testimony of his two ex-wives, both of whom showed up thinly disguised in his novels—a Margaret Martinson in When She Was Good and actress Clare Bloom in I Married a Communist. Bloom penned her own bitter exposé of their 14-year-long relationship and four year marriage in he memoir Leaving the Doll’s House.
ellauri106.html on line 180: Not far behind will be some Jewish critics who always found Roth’s portraits embarrassing for their relentless sexuality and discomfort with aspects of the culture that were at odds with his identity as an American. Others were angered at his voraciously espoused atheism—“I’m exactly the opposite of religious, I’m anti-religious. I find religious peopl e hideous. I hate the religious lies. It’s all a big lie.” Some Jewish critics hounded him from the beginning of his career. Rabbi Gershom Scholem, the great kabbalah scholar, said Portnoy’s Compl aint was more harmful to Jews than The Protocols of the Elders of Zion. And Roth was heckled and booed at an early appearance at Yeshiva University which stunned and shocked the author.
ellauri106.html on line 184: “The comedy is that the real haters of the bourgeois Jews, with the real contempt for their everyday lives, are these compl ex intellectual giants,” Zuckerman snorts. “They loathe them, and don’t particularly care for the smell of the Jewish proletariat either. All of them full of sympathy suddenly for the ghetto world of their traditional fathers now that the traditional fathers are filed for safekeeping in Beth Moses Memorial Park. When they were alive they wanted to strangle the immigrant bastards to death because they dared to think they could actually be of consequence without ever having read Proust past Swann’s Way. And the ghetto—what the ghetto saw of these guys was their heels: out, out, screaming for air, to write about great Jews like Ralph Waldo Emerson and William Dean Howells. But now that the Weathermen are around, and me and my friends Jerry Rubin and Herbert Marcuse and H. Rap Brown, it’s where oh where’s the inspired orderliness of those good old Hebrew school days? Where’s the linoleum? Where’s Aunt Rose? Where is all the wonderful inflexible patriarchal authority into which they wanted to stick a knife?”
ellauri106.html on line 202: Sir Gawain and the Green Knight is a late 14th-century Middle English chivalric romance. The author is unknown; the title was given centuries later. It is one of the best known Arthurian stories. It is an important exampl e of a chivalric romance, which typically involves a hero who goes on a quest which tests his prowess.
ellauri106.html on line 236: My Life as a Man is not nearly so consistently enjoyable as Portnoy's Compl aint, but it is the product of a more painful period in the author's life. In his autobiography, Roth reveals that much of Tarnopol´s life is based on his own experiences; for exampl e, Roth´s destructive marriage to Margaret Martinson, which is portrayed through Tarnopol´s relationship with the character of Maureen.
ellauri106.html on line 239: Arvostelija Morris Kyrpäkiven mielestä just tää kirja oli aivan hulvattoman hauska: If there has been a funnier novel in the last 10 years, or one that expl oits sex, psychoanalysis, and the "family romance" more brilliantly, I don´t know what it could be. Tästä jälleen näemme että huumori on höröttäjän silmässä. Tai tässä tapauxessa pikemminkin perssilmässä.
ellauri106.html on line 244: Here are some of the women who helped the novelist, who has died at the age of 85, expl ore and unpack the compl exities of being a toxic ape.
ellauri106.html on line 255: Who are Philip Roth´s ex-wives Claire Bloom and Margaret Martinson? Have they got anything in common? I bet they were spitting images of Phil´s mother, one way or another. Roth was married twice – to Margaret Martinson from 1959 to 1963. He met Martinson in 1956 and married her three years later. Roth claims she used someone else’s urine sampl e to persuade him she was pregnant and trick him into marriage.
ellauri106.html on line 256: The coupl e separated acrimoniously in 1963 and she subsequently refused to divorce Roth. They separated in 1963 and she died in a car crash in 1968, something that deepl y affected Roth’s work.
ellauri106.html on line 259: Martinson inspired “The Monkey” (Mary Jane Reed) in novel Portnoy’s Compl aint and Maureen Tarnopol in My Life as a Man.
ellauri106.html on line 273: Roth claimed his first wife, Margaret Martinson, used someone else’s urine sampl e to persuade him she was pregnant and trick him into marrying her.
ellauri106.html on line 274: Margaret had two children from a previous relationship. To get more, they oughta have used somebody else´s sperm sampl e.
ellauri106.html on line 286: The Wings of the Dove is a 1902 novel by Henry James. It tells the story of Milly Theale, an American heiress stricken with a serious disease, and her effect on the peopl e around her. Some of these peopl e befriend Milly with honourable motives, while others are more self-interested.
ellauri106.html on line 331: William Dean Howells (/ˈhaʊəlz/; March 1, 1837 – May 11, 1920) was an American realist novelist, literary critic, and pl aywright, nicknamed "The Dean of American Letters".
ellauri106.html on line 339: "I hope the time is coming when not only the artist, but the common, average man, who always ´has the standard of the arts in his power,´ will have also the courage to appl y it, and will reject the ideal grasshopper wherever he finds it, in science, in literature, in art, because it is not ´simpl e, natural, and honest,´ because it is not like a real grasshopper. But I will own that I think the time is yet far off, and that the peopl e who have been brought up on the ideal grasshopper, the heroic grasshopper, the impassioned grasshopper, the self-devoted, adventureful, good old romantic card-board grasshopper, must die out before the simpl e, honest, and natural grasshopper can have a fair field."
ellauri106.html on line 354: Jerry Rubin (another Jew) alotti sodanvastasena vassarina ja lopetti Appl e-miljonäärinä. Rags to riches. Half-guerrilla and half-businessman.
ellauri106.html on line 365: Brown is now known to have no direct relationship with the alleged riot of 1967. The head of the Cambridge police department, Brice Kinnamon, nonetheless claimed that the city had no racial problems, Brown was the "sole" cause of the disorder, and it was "a well-pl anned Communist attempt to overthrow the government."
ellauri106.html on line 367: Documents from the Kerner Commission investigation show that he compl eted his speech at 10 pm July 24, then walked a woman home and was allegedly shot by a deputy sheriff without provocation.
ellauri106.html on line 390: Given long-standing feminist arguments that Roth is a misogynist—not to mention the portrait in Bloom’s memoirs—it was inevitable that any Roth biography would spark arguments about gender politics. What was surprising is that the debate would center around the biographer more than Roth. In the wake of the biography’s release, Bailey has been accused of shocking acts. Four former students from the elite New Orleans high school where he’d taught during the 1990s came forward to compl ain that he had groomed them as minors and sexually pursued them as adults. One of these women claimed he raped her. Another former student came forward with an allegation of attempted rape when she was an adult. Finally, Valentina Rice, a New York publishing executive, told The New York Times that Bailey raped her in 2015. Bailey strenuously denies all these allegations.
ellauri106.html on line 392: "I'm exactly the opposite of religious, I'm anti-religious. I find religious peopl e hideous. I hate the religious lies. It's all a big lie. … I have such a huge dislike. It's not a neurotic thing, but the miserable record of religion. I don't even want to talk about it, it's not interesting to talk about the sheep referred to as believers."
ellauri106.html on line 399: "You know that telling the whole world that you don't believe in God is going to, you know, have peopl e say, 'Oh my goodness, you know, that's a terrible thing for him to say," Braver said.
ellauri106.html on line 400: Roth repl ied, "When the whole world doesn't believe in God, it'll be a great pl ace."
ellauri106.html on line 403: Religion was a lie that he had recognized early in life, and he found all religions offensive, considered their superstitious folderol meaningless, childish, couldn´t stand the compl ete unadultness — the baby talk and the righteousness and the sheep, the avid believers. No hocus-pocus about death and God or obsolete fantasies of heaven for him. There was only our bodies, born to live and die on terms decided by the bodies that had lived and died before us. If he could be said to have located a philosophical niche for himself that was it - he'd come upon it early and intuitively, and however elemental, that was the whole of it. Should he ever write an autobiography, he'd call it The Life and Death of a Male Body.
ellauri106.html on line 405: Phil´s childhood love of baseball offered him “membership in a great secular nationalistic church from which nobody had ever seemed to suggest that Jews should be excluded.” Babe Ruth, whose real name was George Herman Ruth, Jr., was born and raised in Baltimore, Maryland. He died of pneumonia and compl ications from throat cancer in New York City in 1948.
ellauri106.html on line 421: And this, too, is surely true of religion. In prehistoric times, Homo sapiens was deepl y endangered. Early humans were less fleet of foot, with fewer natural weapons and less well-honed senses than all the predators that threatened them. Moreover, they were hampered in their movements by the need to protect their uniquely immature young - juicy meals for any hungry beast. We had less natural protection against repeated changes of climate than other species - yet we survived. Human spirituality would have pl ayed an important part.
ellauri106.html on line 425: As well as the social cohesion that spirituality and early religious beliefs must have brought to threatened groups of humans, they must also have been a valuable mechanism to persuade humans to struggle against the odds. Surely, human spirituality is deepl y embedded in our genes. Victor Frankl, in his observations about survival in Auschwitz, argued that in his view, only those inmates who had some spiritual sense, some idea that there was a power above that could see their suffering, found the strength and resolution to survive the terrible dehumanisation and deprivation of the concentration camps.
ellauri106.html on line 426: So to find religious peopl e hideous is as misguided as to condemn those driven to try to have children.
ellauri106.html on line 450: During what Henry Luce deemed the American century—the century during which America rises to a position of dominance on the globe—the Americanethos paradoxically pl ummets, in large part due to the Vietnam War and the Watergate scandal, politically charged events to which Roth pays particular attention in the novel because he sees them as formative of the 1990s moment at which he writes.
ellauri106.html on line 451: In a world governed by disorder, the American Dream of success and happiness through hard work can is likely to remain that: a dream. Immigrants such as those those from whom Roth hails who come to America seeking a betterlife might come to recognize that policies impl emented by the American government do notinherently make great sense or work to support their unequivocal movement up the social ladder despite the melting-pot myth and its variations as politicians may propagate them.
ellauri106.html on line 469: ploads/2014/05/philip-roth-at-jts-640x400.jpg" />
ellauri106.html on line 472: “From enfant terrible to elder statesman. Time heals all wounds,” Rabbi David Wolpe of Sinai Templ e in Los Angeles remarked to JTA via email. No hocus pocus about death and God or obsolete fantasies of heaven for him. There was only our bodies, born to live and die on terms decided by the bodies that had lived and died before us. If he could be said to have located a philosophical niche for himself, that was it — he’d come upon it early and intuitively, and however elemental, that was the whole of it. Should he ever write an autobiography, he’d call it ‘The Life and Death of the Male Body.’ Well actually he called it "My life as a man".
ellauri106.html on line 481: Johnny Appl eseed (suom. "Omenansiemen-Johnny", oikealta nimeltään John Chapman, 26. syyskuuta 1774 Leominster, Massachusetts – maaliskuussa 1845 Fort Wayne, Indiana) oli yhdysvaltalainen omenatarhuri. Hän viljeli 1800-luvun alkupuolella valtavia määriä omenapuita Pennsylvaniaan, Ohioon ja Indianaan perustamillaan taimitarhoilla uudisraivaajien ostettavaksi. Johnny Appl eseedin elämästä on tullut osa Yhdysvaltain kansanperinnettä ja häntä muistetaan yhä niin tekojensa kuin luonnonläheisen elämäntapansakin vuoksi.
ellauri106.html on line 484: Vuoteen 1806 mennessä Chapmanista oli tullut alueella kuuluisa ja arvostettu, ja hän sai lempinimekseen Johnny Appl eseed. Hänelle tarjottiin usein yösija ja ruokaa omenoita ja omenapuita vastaan. Samalla hänen ympärilleen alkoi syntyä legendoja, joita on edelleen vaikea erottaa tositarinoista.
ellauri106.html on line 499: O’Day carries with him at all times a dictionary and thesaurus, and he trains his discipl es to do the same.
ellauri106.html on line 507: Roth’s pl ots are masked by a fundamentally conservative denial of ideology. They metaphorize the particular crises of these particular men into transcendent markers of the human condition and, in doing so, once again reinforce the “romance” of "modernization." (Whazat? Lue alempaa. Se tarkottaa talousliberalismia.)
ellauri106.html on line 512: A quintessentially American experience: “Three generations. All of them growing. The working. The saving. The success. Three generations in raptures over America. Three generations of becoming one with a peopl e. And now with the fourth it had all come to nothing. The total vandalization of their world”.
ellauri106.html on line 516: Vietnam was, in fact, the inevitable result of America’s romantic liberalism, the natural byproduct of President Truman’s announcement in 1947 that “The free peopl es of the world look to us for support in maintaining their freedoms.” In practice, this meant the propping up of each and every anti-communist regime, however unfree it might be.
ellauri106.html on line 527: “Comically agnostic,” an apt description, I think, of much of Roth’s later work. With all of history suddenly exposed as fictional constructs, artists were freed to interrogate it with impunity, making it the stuff of parodic pl ay.
ellauri106.html on line 529: Without the sure theoretical footing that orthodox Marxism provided those of Benjamin’s generation, Roth, like many who used to kinda identify themselves with the late-20th century left, has been set adrift amid the wreckage of multinational capital, techno-militarism, and the information and cultural revolutions. In his trilogy, Roth offers a compl ex and beautifully-rendered document of the final decades of the “American Century,” but it is one that, like its narrator, Nathan Zuckerman, ultimately throws up its hands in despair, surrendering the compl exities of life and the possibility of positive change en lieu of aesthetic and ascetic remove.
ellauri106.html on line 543: ... Her parents (Clairen kai) were simpl e peopl e in the grips of a pipe dream that they could not begin to articulate or rationally defend but for which they were zealously willing to sacrifice friends, relatives, business, the good will of neighbors, even their own sanity, even their children’s sanity....
ellauri106.html on line 624: Roth’s ex-wife, Claire Bloom, wrote about their relationship in her memoir, Leaving A Doll’s House, 25 years ago. You could also read Roth’s not-exactly-contrite reaction to Bloom’s compl aints, his 1998 novel, I Married A Communist, in which the protagonist’s vicious wife was clearly based on Bloom.
ellauri107.html on line 28: Herttaisia muistoja play:none">Herttaista
ellauri107.html on line 57: play_download&mode=pl ay&dl_mp3folder=L&dl_file=lyle_van_news_1945-08-10_lyle_van_news.mp3&dl_series=Lyle%20Van%20News&dl_title=Lyle%20Van%20News&dl_date=1945.08.10&dl_size=3.43%20MB">Lyle Van puhuu haudan takaa
ellauri107.html on line 61: I am Casey's father and son of Lyle Van and one of the three little redheads. Dirk, my brother was on Westwood One radio for many years doing news and information shows. I remember all of the WOR peopl e you mentioned..on Christmas Eve our choir from Christs Church in Rye would sing on air every year. I miss my dad as all sons miss their dad when they are gone. He and my mother raised us in a safe and happy household and we were all better for it. We have great memories of our childhood.
ellauri107.html on line 75: Johtuuko Rothin pidätetty raivo huonosta omastatunnosta? Paljon mahdollista, pl us huonosta izetunnosta. Naah, narsismia se vaan on.
ellauri107.html on line 91: Neil Klugman is an intelligent, working-class army veteran and a graduate of Rutgers University who works as a library clerk. He falls for Brenda Patimkin, a wealthy Radcliffe student who is home for the summer. They meet by the swimming pool at Old Oaks Country Club in Purchase, New York, a private club that Neil visits as a guest of his cousin Doris. Neil phones her and asks for a date. She does not remember him but agrees. He waits as she finishes a tennis game which only ends when it gets too dark to pl ay.
ellauri107.html on line 93: They face obstacles from Brenda's family (particularly her mother), due to differences in class and assimilation into the American mainstream. Brenda's family are nouveau riche, their money coming from the successful pl umbing suppl y business owned and run by her father. Brenda herself is old enough to remember "being poor". Other conflicts include propriety and issues related to premarital sex and the possibility of pregnancy and Mrs. Patimkin's envy of her daughter's youth.
ellauri107.html on line 95: After a few dates, Brenda persuades her father to invite Neil to stay with them for two weeks. This angers her mother, who feels that she should have been asked instead. Neil enjoys being able to sneak into Brenda's room at night but has misgivings over her entitled outlook, which is reflected in her spoiled and petulant younger sister, and her naive brother Ron, who misses the hero worship he enjoyed as a star basketball pl ayer at Ohio State University. Neil is astonished when Brenda reveals that she does not take birth control pills or use any other precautions to avoid pregnancy. She angrily rejects Neil's concerns. He prepares to leave, but she decides to persuade him to stay by agreeing to get a diaphragm.
ellauri107.html on line 104: An American Dream is a 1965 novel by American author Norman Mailer. It was published by Dial Press. Mailer wrote it in serialized form for Esquire, consciously attempting to resurrect the methodology used by Charles Dickens and other earlier novelists, with Mailer writing each chapter against monthly deadlines. The book is written in a poetic style heavy with metaphor that creates unique and hypnotising narrative and dialogue. The novel's action takes pl ace over 32 hours in the life of its protagonist Stephen Rojack. Rojack is a decorated war-hero, former congressman, talk-show host, and university professor. He is depicted as the metaphorical embodiment of the American Dream.
ellauri107.html on line 120: A lot of peopl e get cancer because they were too responsible with their lives. They led lives that were more responsible then they wanted to be. They lived their lives for others more than for themselves. Denied themselves certain fundamental things, whatever they were. . . . Cancer is a revolution of the cells."
ellauri107.html on line 122: For exampl e, when Rojack murders his wife, he compares it to the killing of the Germans.
ellauri107.html on line 124: Mailer attempted to use existentialism to excuse Rojack's misogynistic expl oration as his "sexistentialist project". Rojack's victims are women and a black man, appropriate objects of the white male's "dominant wrath".
ellauri107.html on line 142: "Getting peopl e right is not what living is all about anyway,” he wrote in American Pastoral. “It’s getting them wrong that is living, getting them wrong and wrong and wrong and then, on careful reconsideration, getting them wrong again.”
ellauri107.html on line 148: Twelve years ago I saw him through his last love. A young person less than half his age whose family strongly disapproved of the association and who evidently grew to disapprove of it herself. It was a trauma that might have pl owed Philip under and that he told aslant in Exit Ghost, the novel dedicated to me (!). A coupl e of failed attempts at courtship followed, boring and painful for the women involved. Then he closed the door on heteroerotic life entirely. He’d learned how to be an elderly gentleman who behaves correctly. He joined the ranks of the impotent.
ellauri107.html on line 152: "I am sensitive to nothing in all the world as I am to my moral reputation." Torment about rectitude pl agued Philip as acutely as any itch in the loins. That a man who’d written lurid books and led a sleazy life should be so primly worried about what peopl e were saying struck me as funny. But that's a typical symptom for narcissism.
ellauri107.html on line 154: "Philosophical generalization is compl etely alien to me—some other writer’s work. I’m a philosophical illiterate." Yep, his philosophy was solipsistic semitism. He had no need to read about it, he wrote the books.
ellauri107.html on line 158: “Found it!” he announces. “Opened the book and skimmed for 10 minutes and there it was. Goes like this, and you’re ideally situated to hear it: ‘A man that is born falls into a dream like a man who falls into the sea. If he tries to climb out into the air as inexperienced peopl e endeavor to do, he drowns. The way is to the destructive element submit yourself, and with the exertions of your hands and feet in the water make the deep, deep sea keep you up … In the destructive element immerse.’ This has been my credo, the lifeblood of my books. I knew it was from Lord Jim but didn’t know where. All I had to do was put myself in a trance and I found it: ‘In the destructive element immerse.’ It’s what I’ve said to myself in art and, woe is me, in life too. Submit to the deeps. Let them buoy you up.”
ellauri107.html on line 171: He was born in 1804 in Salem, Massachusetts, to Nathaniel Hathorne and the former Elizabeth Clarke Manning. His ancestors include John Hathorne, the only judge from the Salem witch trials who never repented his involvement in the witch hunt. He entered Bowdoin College in 1821, was elected to Phi Beta Kappa in 1824, and graduated in 1825. He published his first work in 1828, the novel Fanshawe; he later tried to suppress it, feeling that it was not equal to the standard of his later work.[2] He published several short stories in periodicals, which he collected in 1837 as Twice-Told Tales. The next year, he became engaged to Sophia Peabody. He worked at the Boston Custom House and joined Brook Farm, a transcendentalist community, before marrying Peabody in 1842. The coupl e moved to The Old Manse in Concord, Massachusetts, later moving to Salem, the Berkshires, then to The Wayside in Concord. The Scarlet Letter was published in 1850, followed by a succession of other novels. A political appointment as consul took Hawthorne and family to Europe before their return to Concord in 1860. Hawthorne died on May 19, 1864, and was survived by his wife and their three children.
ellauri107.html on line 173: Much of Hawthorne's writing centers on New England, many works featuring moral metaphors with an anti-Puritan inspiration. His fiction works are considered part of the Romantic movement and, more specifically, dark romanticism. His themes often center on the inherent evil and sin of humanity, and his works often have moral messages and deep psychological compl exity. His published works include novels, short stories, and a biography of his college friend Franklin Pierce, the 14th President of the United States.
ellauri107.html on line 187: suggestive panegyric [in his 1850 review of Hawthorne’s Mosses from an Old Manse], [that] Melville writes . . . “already I feel that this Hawthorne has dropped germinous seeds into my soul. He expands and deepens down, the more I contempl ate him; and further and further, shoots his strong New England roots in the hot soil of my Southern soul”.
ellauri107.html on line 191: . . . Hawthorne liked [Melville’s novel Typee], observing [in 1846] that . . . Melville has “that freedom of view—it would be too harsh to call it laxity of principl e—which renders him tolerant of codes of morals that may be little in accordance with our own; a spirit proper enough to a young and adventurous sailor . . .”
ellauri107.html on line 193: Hawthorne is much more expl icit in regard to same sex relationships and perhaps alludes to Melville’s wooing of him in his 1852 novel The Blithedale Romance. In excerpting that work for the website, I introduced it as follows:
ellauri107.html on line 200: Coverdale describes Hollingsworth's "dark compl exion, his abundant beard, and the rude strength with which his features seemed to have been hammered out of iron, rather than chiselled or moulded from any finer or softer material." He adds that in Hollingsworth's "gentler moods, there was a tenderness in his voice, eyes, mouth, in his gesture, and in every indescribable manifestation, which few men could resist, and no woman."
ellauri107.html on line 204: Coverdale notes that "there was something of the woman moulded into the great, stalwart frame of Hollingsworth; nor was he ashamed of it, as men often are of what is best in them, nor seemed ever to know that there was such a soft pl ace in his heart. . . . I besought Hollingsworth to let nobody else enter the room, but continually to make me sensible of his own presence by a grasp of the hand, a word, -- a prayer, if he thought good to utter it . . . ."
ellauri107.html on line 208: Coverdale declares, "I loved Hollingsworth, as has already been enough expressed." He adds, "If . . .[Priscilla] thought him beautiful, it was no wonder. I often thought him so, with the expression of tender, human care, and gentlest sympathy . . . ." And in Hawthorne's most expl icitly homoerotic allusion, Coverdale notes, "the footing, on which we all associated at Blithedale, was widely different from that of conventional society. While inclining us to the soft affections of the Golden Age, it seemed to authorize any individual, of either sex, to fall in love with any other, regardless of what would elsewhere be judged suitable and prudent."
ellauri107.html on line 212: Coverdale concludes the tale of Zenobia's hopeless love for Hollingsworth and enigmatically adds, "It suits me not to expl ain what was the analogy that I saw, or imagined, between Zenobia's situation and mine; nor, I believe, will the reader detect this one secret, hidden beneath many a revelation which perhaps concerned me less."
ellauri107.html on line 220: [A Tanglewood Tale] dramatizes the developing friendship of Nathaniel Hawthorne and Herman Melville during the 1850-1851 period when both authors resided in Berkshire County, Massachusetts. In spite of their strong attraction to each other, they become estranged by fundamental differences. Puritan-in-spite-of himself Hawthorne is pressed too far when worldly former whaler Melville becomes expl icit about shipboard liaisons with fellow sailors. Though the pl ay suggests Hawthorne is curious about same sex relations, the reserved New Englander flees Melville and the Berkshires rather than pursue the subject.
ellauri107.html on line 242: In surveying Billy, “sometimes [Claggart’s] melancholy expression would have in it a touch of soft yearning, as if [he] could even have loved Billy but for fate and ban.” Evidently, Claggart has not fully disguised his private appreciation of Billy; but, because he believes something forbids any future for such feelings, he hardens his heart more and more fiercely toward the object of his desire. What “fate” and what “ban” does his misguided imagination perceive? Do their roles on the ship or elsewhere in society somehow doom any intimacy between them? Or does Claggart just presume Billy could never reciprocate his feelings? Might the Master at Arms simpl y despise sexuality in general and homosexuality in particular and, as a result, find himself driven all the more mad by his uncontrollable “yearning”? Whatever the accurate diagnosis, it is clear that Claggart distorts any positive feelings he possesses for Billy into negative ones with terrible consequences.
ellauri107.html on line 246: Billy Budd provides an impl icit indictment of the culture, whether military or civil, that encourages the kind of closet where a Claggart so readily succumbs to his “depravity according to nature.” Captain Vere likewise shows a closed, perhaps also “closeted” mind as ready prey for the phenomenon of evil. In Vere’s presence, as Billy is struck dumb by Claggart’s accusation, Claggart is struck dead by a single blow from Billy’s fist, the only response he can muster to defend himself. Although Vere cherishes Billy as “an angel of God” and knows him to be innocent of Claggart’s charges, he resists any bending of rules to protect him against the harshest of consequences for his act of insubordination. Ruthlessly silencing the dictates of his heart, “sometimes the feminine in man,” Vere effects what Claggart’s malice alone could not -- Billy’s total destruction.
ellauri107.html on line 248: Although British naval mutineers as well as criminals ashore are expl icitly shown in Billy Budd’s early chapters to have received forms of amnesty that ultimately contributed to the saving of the nation, Vere offers no such amnesty to Billy Budd. Claggart himself is rumored to have entered the service as an alternative to imprisonment, the navy’s need for manpower leading to frequent waivers of usual punishments; but Billy Budd receives no alternatives, no waivers. At Nelson’s triumphant Trafalgar, the thwarting of Napoleon’s invasion pl ans meant a “pl enary absolution” for all the former offenders who had contributed to the victory. Billy, however, a “peacemaker,” neither a mutineer nor a criminal, makes a single misstep in retaliation against a known liar who seeks to manipulate the system to destroy him, and how is Billy to be absolved? Vere’s “vehemently exclaimed” answer: “the angel must hang!”
ellauri107.html on line 256: Cohnia on epäilty homoseksuaaliksi, mutta hänen mahdollisista miessuhteistaan on vain spekulaatioita. Cohn kuoli 59-vuotiaana 2. elokuuta 1986 AIDS:in aiheuttamiin kompl ikaatioihin. Tauti oli diagnosoitu vuonna 1984. Cohn kielsi sairautensa loppuun saakka ja väitti kyseessä olevan maksasyöpä. LOL.
ellauri107.html on line 258: Joseph Welch, the Army's attorney in the hearings, made an apparent reference to Cohn's homosexuality. After asking a witness, at McCarthy's request, if a photo entered as evidence "came from a pixie", he defined "pixie" as "a close relative of a fairy". "Pixie" was a camera-model name at the time; "fairy" is a derogatory term for a homosexual man. The peopl e at the hearing recognized the impl ication, and found it amusing; Cohn later called the remark "malicious," "wicked," and "indecent."
ellauri107.html on line 322: isä Herman antaa pojalleen ainoan omalta isältään, ensimmäisen polven maahanmuuttajalta rabbi Senderiltä perimänsä esineen, emalisen parranajomukin vuodelta 1912. Siinä on kuhmuja ja emalia irronnut, arvo enint. 50c pl us tunnearvo.
ellauri107.html on line 402: In crisis over whether he’s a man or nuts. I'd say nuts. He is a sexual extremist and erotomaniac, a sociopath and wannabe paedophile, rummaging in the knicker drawer of his best friend’s teenage daughter. A habitual liar, a graveyard onanist, a childless despiser of families and coupl es; a joyous micturator over all laughter, hope, goodness and wholesomeness (a peculiarly American obsession: see also David Lynch), Sabbath entertains us with his negativity.
ellauri107.html on line 427: 1937 English author J.R.R. Tolkien published The Hobbit; the title and the originally somewhat compl acent and bourgeois character of Bilbo and hobbits in general were influenced by Babbitt.
ellauri107.html on line 436: His name was George F. Babbitt. He was forty-six years old now, in April, 1920, and he made nothing in particular, neither butter nor shoes nor poetry, but he was nimble in the calling of selling houses for more than peopl e could afford to pay.
ellauri107.html on line 438: Myra Babbitt—Mrs. George F. Babbitt—was definitely mature. She had creases from the corners of her mouth to the bottom of her chin, and her pl ump neck bagged. But the thing that marked her as having passed the line was that she no longer had reticences before her husband, and no longer worried about not having reticences. She was in a petticoat now, and corsets which bulged, and unaware of being seen in bulgy corsets. She had become so dully habituated to married life that in her full matronliness she was as sexless as an anemic nun. She was a good woman, a kind woman, a diligent woman, but no one, save perhaps Tinka her ten-year-old, was at all interested in her or entirely aware that she was alive.
ellauri107.html on line 439: “Now you look here! The first thing you got to understand is that all this upl ift and flipflop and settlement-work and recreation is nothing in God's world but the entering wedge for socialism. The sooner a man learns he isn't going to be coddled, and he needn't expect a lot of free grub and, uh, all these free classes and flipflop and doodads for his kids unless he earns 'em, why, the sooner he'll get on the job and produce—produce—produce! That's what the country needs, and not all this fancy stuff that just enfeebles the will-power of the working man and gives his kids a lot of notions above their class. And you—if you'd tend to business instead of fooling and fussing—All the time! When I was a young man I made up my mind what I wanted to do, and stuck to it through thick and thin, and that's why I'm where I am to-day, and—Myra! What do you let the girl chop the toast up into these dinky little chunks for? Can't get your fist onto 'em. Half cold, anyway!”
ellauri107.html on line 441: ple">
ellauri107.html on line 444: In the comedy Andria (“The Girl of Andros”) by the Roman poet Terentius, Simo uses it to comment on the tears of his son Pamphilus at the funeral of a neighbor to his interlocutor Sosias. At first he was of the opinion that these were an expression of special sympathy and was
pl eased about it. But when he discovered that the deceased's pretty sister was also a member of the funeral procession, he realized that his son's emotion was only faked to get closer to him: hinc illae lacrumae, haec illast misericordia. ("Hence his tears, that is the reason for his pity!").
ellauri107.html on line 448: “Lots of news. Terrible big tornado in the South. Hard luck, all right. But this, say, this is corking! Beginning of the end for those fellows! New York Assembly has passed some bills that ought to com
pl etely outlaw the socialists! And there's an elevator-runners' strike in New York and a lot of college boys are taking their
pl aces. That's the stuff! And a mass-meeting in Birmingham's demanded that this Mick agitator, this fellow De Valera, be deported. Dead right, by golly! All these agitators paid with German gold anyway. And we got no business interfering with the Irish or any other foreign government. Keep our hands strictly off. And there's another well-authenticated rumor from Russia that Lenin is dead. That's fine. It's beyond me why we don't just step in there and kick those Bolshevik cusses out.”
ellauri107.html on line 466: He serenely believed that the one purpose of the real-estate business was to make money for George F. Babbitt. True, it was a good advertisement at Boosters' Club lunches, and all the varieties of Annual Banquets to which Good Fellows were invited, to speak sonorously of Unselfish Public Service, the Broker's Obligation to Keep Inviolate the Trust of His Clients, and a thing called Ethics, whose nature was confusing but if you had it you were a High-class Realtor and if you hadn't you were a shyster, a piker, and a fly-by-night. These virtues awakened Confidence, and enabled you to handle Bigger Propositions. But they didn't im
pl y that you were to be impractical and refuse to take twice the value of a house if a buyer was such an idiot that he didn't jew you down on the asking-price.
ellauri107.html on line 469: He had, with indignation at the criticism of Zenith, skimmed through a report in which the notorious pessimist Seneca Doane, the radical lawyer, asserted that to throw boys and young girls into a bull-pen crammed with men suffering from syphilis, delirium tremens, and insanity was not the perfect way of educating them. He had controverted the report by growling, “Folks that think a jail ought to be a bloomin' Hotel Thornleigh make me sick. If peo
pl e don't like a jail, let 'em behave 'emselves and keep out of it. Besides, these reform cranks always exaggerate.” That was the beginning and quite com
pl etely the end of his investigations into Zenith's charities and corrections; and as to the “vice districts” he brightly expressed it, “Those are things that no decent man monkeys with. Besides, smatter fact, I'll tell you confidentially: it's a protection to our daughters and to decent women to have a district where tough nuts can raise cain. Keeps 'em away from our own homes.”
ellauri107.html on line 470: “A good labor union is of value because it keeps out radical unions, which would destroy property. No one ought to be forced to belong to a union, however. All labor agitators who try to force men to join a union should be hanged. In fact, just between ourselves, there oughtn't to be any unions allowed at all; and as it's the best way of fighting the unions, every business man ought to belong to an em
pl oyers'-association and to the Chamber of Commerce. In union there is strength. So any selfish hog who doesn't join the Chamber of Commerce ought to be forced to.”
ellauri107.html on line 473: But Babbitt was virtuous. He advocated, though he did not practise, the prohibition of alcohol; he praised, though he did not obey, the laws against motor-speeding; he paid his debts; he contributed to the church, the Red Cross, and the Y. M. C. A.; he followed the custom of his clan and cheated only as it was sanctified by precedent; and he never descended to trickery—though, as he ex
pl ained to Paul Riesling:
ellauri107.html on line 474: “Course I don't mean to say that every ad I write is literally true or that I always believe everything I say when I give some buyer a good strong selling-spiel. You see—you see it's like this: In the first
pl ace, maybe the owner of the property exaggerated when he put it into my hands, and it certainly isn't my
pl ace to go proving my principal a liar! And then most folks are so darn crooked themselves that they expect a fellow to do a little lying, so if I was fool enough to never whoop the ante I'd get the credit for lying anyway! In self-defense I got to toot my own horn, like a lawyer defending a client—his bounden duty, ain't it, to bring out the poor dub's good points? Why, the Judge himself would bawl out a lawyer that didn't, even if they both knew the guy was guilty! But even so, I don't pad out the truth like Cecil Rountree or Thayer or the rest of these realtors. Fact, I think a fellow that's willing to deliberately up and profit by lying ought to be shot!”
ellauri107.html on line 484: Finkelstein asserted that five dollars was not too great a sum, not for a really high-class lighter which was suitably nickeled and provided with connections of the very best quality. “I always say—and believe me, I base it on a pretty fairly extensive mercantile experience—the best is the cheapest in the long run. Of course if a fellow wants to be a Jew about it, he can get cheap junk, but in the long RUN, the cheapest thing is—the best you can get! Now you take here just th' other day: I got a new top for my old boat and some upholstery, and I paid out a hundred and twenty-six fifty, and of course a lot of fellows would say that was too much—Lord, if the Old Folks—they live in one of these hick towns up-state and they sim
pl y can't get onto the way a city fellow's mind works, and then, of course, they're Jews, and they'd lie right down and die if they knew Sid had anted up a hundred and twenty-six bones. But I don't figure I was stuck, George, not a bit. Machine looks brand new now—not that it's so darned old, of course; had it less 'n three years, but I give it hard service; never drive less 'n a hundred miles on Sunday and, uh—Oh, I don't really think you got stuck, George. In the LONG run, the best is, you might say, it's unquestionably the cheapest.”
ellauri107.html on line 487: They grinned and went into the Neronian washroom, where a line of men bent over the bowls inset along a prodigious slab of marble as in religious prostration before their own images in the massy mirror. Voices thick, satisfied, authoritative, hurtled along the marble walls, bounded from the ceiling of lavender-bordered milky tiles, while the lords of the city, the barons of insurance and law and fertilizers and motor tires, laid down the law for Zenith; announced that the day was warm-indeed, indisputably of spring; that wages were too high and the interest on mortgages too low; that Babe Ruth, the eminent
pl ayer of baseball, was a noble man; and that “those two nuts at the Climax Vaudeville Theater this week certainly are a slick pair of actors.”
ellauri107.html on line 495: “Well we know—not just in the Bible alone, but it stands to reason—a man who doesn't buckle down and do his duty, even if it does bore him sometimes, is nothing but a—well, he's sim
pl y a weakling. Mollycoddle, in fact! And what do you advocate? Come down to cases! If a man is bored by his wife, do you seriously mean he has a right to chuck her and take a sneak, or even kill himself?”
ellauri107.html on line 496: “Good Lord, I don't know what 'rights' a man has! And I don't know the solution of boredom. If I did, I'd be the one philosopher that had the cure for living. But I do know that about ten times as many peo
pl e find their lives dull, and unnecessarily dull, as ever admit it; and I do believe that if we busted out and admitted it sometimes, instead of being nice and patient and loyal for sixty years, and then nice and patient and dead for the rest of eternity, why, maybe, possibly, we might make life more fun.”
ellauri107.html on line 499:
Capitalist expl oitation
ellauri107.html on line 504: Whenever Thompson twanged, “Put your John Hancock on that line,” Babbitt was as much amused by the antiquated provincialism as any proper Englishman by any American. He knew himself to be of a breeding altogether more esthetic and sensitive than Thompson's. He was a college graduate, he
pl ayed golf, he often smoked cigarettes instead of cigars, and when he went to Chicago he took a room with a private bath. “The whole thing is,” he ex
pl ained to Paul Riesling, “these old codgers lack the subtlety that you got to have to-day.”
ellauri107.html on line 510: In the living-room, in a corner of the davenport, Ted settled down to his Home Study;
pl ain geometry, Cicero, and the agonizing metaphors of Comus.
ellauri107.html on line 513: Babbitt looked up irritably from the comic strips in the Evening Advocate. They composed his favorite literature and art, these illustrated chronicles in which Mr. Mutt hit Mr. Jeff with a rotten egg, and Mother corrected Father's vulgarisms by means of a rolling-pin. With the solemn face of a devotee, breathing heavily through his open mouth, he
pl odded nightly through every picture, and during the rite he detested interruptions. Furthermore, he felt that on the subject of Shakespeare he wasn't really an authority. Neither the Advocate-Times, the Evening Advocate, nor the Bulletin of the Zenith Chamber of Commerce had ever had an editorial on the matter, and until one of them had spoken he found it hard to form an original opinion. But even at risk of floundering in strange bogs, he could not keep out of an open controversy.
ellauri107.html on line 518: He snatched from the back of his geometry half a hundred advertisements of those home-study courses which the energy and foresight of American commerce have contributed to the science of education. The first dis
pl ayed the portrait of a young man with a pure brow, an iron jaw, silk socks, and hair like patent leather. Standing with one hand in his trousers-pocket and the other extended with chiding forefinger, he was bewitching an audience of men with gray beards, paunches, bald heads, and every other sign of wisdom and prosperity. Above the picture was an inspiring educational symbol—no antiquated lamp or torch or owl of Minerva, but a row of dollar signs. The text ran:
ellauri107.html on line 554: With the threat of serious illness hanging over her, Milly decides to travel to Venice with Mrs. Stringham. Aunt Maud, Kate and Densher follow her. At a party Milly gives in her Venice palazzo (the older Palazzo Barbaro, called "Palazzo Leporelli" in the novel), Kate finally reveals her com
pl ete
pl an to Densher: he is to marry Milly so that, after her presumably soon-to-occur death, he will inherit the money they can marry on. Densher had suspected this was Kate's idea, and he demands that she consummate their affair before he will go along with her
pl an.
ellauri107.html on line 556: Aunt Maud and Kate return to London while Densher remains with Milly. Unfortunately, the dying girl learns from a former suitor of Kate's about the
pl ot to get her money. She withdraws from Densher and her condition deteriorates. Densher sees her one last time before he leaves for London, where he eventually receives news of Milly's death. Milly does leave him a large amount of money despite everything. But Densher does not accept the money, and he will not marry Kate unless she also refuses the bequest. Conversely, if Kate chooses the money instead of him, Densher offers to make the bequest over to her in full. The lovers part on the novel's final page with a cryptic exclamation from Kate: "We shall never be again as we were!"
ellauri108.html on line 27:
MUSTARASTAS play:none">Vapaaliikkeitä
ellauri108.html on line 46: Trumpin kaudella luisu oli niin nopeaa, ettei Yhdysvallat edes CIA:n käyttämien aineistojen valossa ole enää luokiteltavissa puhtaasti demokraattiseksi valtioksi. CIA käyttää analyyseissään niin sanottua Polity-indeksiä, jossa maat saavat pisteitä kymmenestä miinuspisteestä kymmeneen
pl uspisteeseen.
ellauri108.html on line 53:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri108.html on line 55: · · · Will our Hebrew Warrior Lil Isaac be able to withstand the threats of Butch the School Bully? Will Lil Isaac stand for the
pl edge? Watch to find out!
ellauri108.html on line 63: Jah or Yah (Hebrew: יה, Yah) is a short form of Hebrew: יהוה (YHWH), the four letters that form the tetragrammaton, the personal name of God: Yahweh, which the ancient Israelites used. The conventional Christian English pronunciation of Jah is /ˈdʒɑː/, even though the letter J here transliterates the palatal approximant (Hebrew י Yodh). The spelling Yah is designed to make the pronunciation /ˈjɑː/ ex
pl icit in an English-language context (see also romanization of Hebrew), especially for Christians who may not use Hebrew regularly during prayer and study.
ellauri108.html on line 77: Rotherham's Emphasised Bible includes 49 uses of Jah. In the Sacred Scriptures Bethel Edition Bible, the Jerusalem Bible, and the New Jerusalem Bible (prior to 1998) the name "YHWH" and its abbreviated form "Yah" is found. The New World Translation of the Holy Scriptures, used primarily by Jehovah's Witnesses, em
pl oys "Jah" in the Hebrew Scriptures, and translates Hallelujah as "Praise Jah" in the Greek Scriptures. The Divine Name King James Bible em
pl oys "JAH" in 50 instances within the Old Testament according to the Divine Name Concordance of the Divine Name King James Bible, Second Edition.
ellauri108.html on line 79: The Spanish language Reina Valera Bible em
pl oys "JAH" in 21 instances within the Old Testament according to the Nueva Concordancia Strong Exhaustiva. The Darby Bible, Young's Literal Translation, The Jubilee Bible 2000, Lexham English Bible, The Com
pl ete Jewish Bible, Names of God Bible, The Recovery Version, Green's Literal Translation, the New Jewish Publication Society or NJPS Tanakh and World English Bible includes "Jah" (Yah in the Lexham English Bible, Com
pl ete Jewish Bible, the NJPS Tanakh and the World English Bible) numerous times within the Old Testament (as well as in the New Testament or New Covenant as is the case in Christian and Messianic Jewish Bibles) as "Hallelujah!" or "Alleluia!" (Praise Jah or Yah in either instance) which is also em
pl oyed throughout the Old Testament of these Bible versions.
ellauri108.html on line 81: "Hallelujah!" or "Alleluia!" is also used in other Bible versions such as the Divine Name King James Bible, American Standard Version, the Recovery Version, The Tree of Life Version, Am
pl ified Bible, God's Word Translation, Holman Christian Standard Bible, International Standard Version, The Message, New American Bible Revised Edition, The Jerusalem Bible, The New Jerusalem Bible, NJPS Tanakh, The first JPS translation, The Living Bible, The Bible in Living English, Young's Literal Translation, King James Version, The Spanish language Reina Valera and even in Bible versions that otherwise do not generally use the Divine Name such as the New King James Version, English Standard Version, J.B. Phillips New Testament, New International Version, Douay-Rheims Version, God's Word Translation, Revised Standard Version, New Revised Standard Version, The Jubilee Bible 2000, New American Standard Bible, New Century Version, New International Reader's Version and several other versions, translations and/or editions in English and other languages varying from once to numerous times depending on the Bible version especially and most notably in Revelation Chapter 19 in Christian and Messianic Jewish Bibles.
ellauri108.html on line 84:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri108.html on line 92: Rastas are monotheists, worshipping a singular God whom they call Jah. The term "Jah" is a shortened version of "Jehovah", the name of God in English translations of the Old Testament. Rastafari holds strongly to the immanence of this divinity; as well as regarding Jah as a deity, Rastas believe that Jah is inherent within each individual. This belief is reflected in the aphorism, often cited by Rastas, that "God is man and man is God", and Rastas speak of "knowing" Jah, in the biblical sense, rather than sim
pl y "believing" in him. In seeking to narrow the distance between humanity and divinity, Rastafari embraces mysticism.
ellauri108.html on line 98: From its origins, Rastafari was intrinsically linked with Haile Selassie, the Emperor of Ethiopia from 1930 to 1974. He remains the central figure in Rastafari ideology, and although all Rastas hold him in esteem, precise interpretations of his identity differ. Understandings of how Haile Selassie relates to Jesus vary among Rastas. Many, although not all, believe that the Ethiopian monarch was the Second Coming of Jesus, legitimising this by reference to their interpretation of the nineteenth chapter of the Book of Revelation. By viewing Haile Selassie as Jesus, these Rastas also regard him as the messiah prophesied in the Old Testament, the manifestation of God in human form, and "the living God". Some perceive him as part of a Trinity, alongside God as Creator and the Holy Spirit, the latter referred to as "the Breath within the tem
pl e". Rastas who view Haile Selassie as Jesus argue that both were descendants from the royal line of the Biblical king David, while Rastas also emphasise the fact that the Makonnen dynasty, of which Haile Selassie was a member, claimed descent from the Biblical figures Solomon and the Queen of Sheba.
ellauri108.html on line 106: During his life, Selassie described himself as a devout Christian. In a 1967 interview, Selassie was asked about the Rasta belief that he was the Second Coming of Jesus, to which he responded: "I have heard of this idea. I also met certain Rastafarians. I told them clearly that I am a man, that I am mortal, and that I will be re
pl aced by the oncoming generation, and that they should never make a mistake in assuming or pretending that a human being is emanated from a deity." His grandson Ermias Sahle Selassie has said that there is "no doubt that Haile Selassie did not encourage the Rastafari movement". Critics of Rastafari have used this as evidence that Rasta theological beliefs are incorrect, although some Rastas take Selassie's denials as evidence that he was indeed the incarnation of God, based on their reading of the Gospel of Luke.
ellauri108.html on line 108: According to Clarke, Rastafari is "concerned above all else with black consciousness, with rediscovering the identity, personal and racial, of black peo
pl e". The Rastafari movement began among Afro-Jamaicans who wanted to reject the British imperial culture that dominated Jamaica and re
pl ace it with a new identity based on a reclamation of their African heritage. Its emphasis is on the purging of any belief in the inferiority of black peo
pl e, and the superiority of white peo
pl e, from the minds of its followers. Rastafari is therefore Afrocentric, equating blackness with the African continent, and endorsing a form of Pan-Africanism.
ellauri108.html on line 110: Practitioners of Rastafari identify themselves with the ancient Israelites—God's chosen peo
pl e in the Old Testament—and believe that black Africans broadly or Rastas more specifically are either the descendants or the reincarnations of this ancient peo
pl e. This is similar to beliefs in Judaism, although many Rastas believe that contemporary Jews' status as the descendants of the ancient Israelites is a false claim. Rastas typically believe that black Africans are God's chosen peo
pl e, meaning that they made a covenant with him and thus have a special responsibility. Rastafari espouses the view that this, the true identity of black Africans, has been lost and needs to be reclaimed.
ellauri108.html on line 112: There is no uniform Rasta view on race. Black supremacy was a theme early in the movement, with the belief in the existence of a distinctly black African race that is superior to other racial groups. While some still hold this belief, non-black Rastas are now widely accepted in the movement. Rastafari's history has opened the religion to accusations of racism. Cashmore noted that there was an "im
pl icit potential" for racism in Rasta beliefs but he also noted that racism was not "intrinsic" to the religion. Some Rastas have acknowledged that there is racism in the movement, primarily against Europeans and Asians. Some Rasta sects reject the notion that a white European can ever be a legitimate Rasta. Other Rasta sects believe that an "African" identity is not inherently linked to black skin but rather is about whether an individual dis
pl ays an African "attitude" or "spirit".
ellauri108.html on line 115: Rastafari teaches that the black African diaspora are exiles living in "Babylon", a term which it ap
pl ies to Western society. For Rastas, European colonialism and global capitalism are regarded as manifestations of Babylon, while police and soldiers are viewed as its agents. The term "Babylon" is adopted because of its Biblical associations. In the Old Testament, Babylon is the Mesopotamian city where the Israelites were held captive, exiled from their homeland, between 597 and 586 BCE; Rastas compare the exile of the Israelites in Mesopotamia to the exile of the African diaspora outside Africa. In the New Testament, "Babylon" is used as a euphemism for the Roman Empire, which was regarded as acting in a destructive manner that was akin to the way in which the ancient Babylonians acted. Rastas perceive the exile of the black African diaspora in Babylon as an experience of great suffering, with the term "suffering" having a significant
pl ace in Rasta discourse.
ellauri108.html on line 117: Rastas view Babylon as being responsible for both the Atlantic slave trade which removed enslaved Africans from their continent and the ongoing poverty which
pl agues the African diaspora. Rastas turn to Biblical scripture to ex
pl ain the Atlantic slave trade, believing that the enslavement, exile, and ex
pl oitation of black Africans was punishment for failing to live up to their status as Jah's chosen peo
pl e. Many Rastas, adopting a Pan-Africanist ethos, have criticised the division of Africa into nation-states, regarding this as a Babylonian development, and are often hostile to capitalist resource extraction from the continent. Rastas seek to delegitimise and destroy Babylon, something often conveyed in the Rasta aphorism "Chant down Babylon". Rastas often expect the white-dominated society to dismiss their beliefs as false, and when this happens they see it as confirmation of the correctness of their faith.
ellauri108.html on line 119: Rastas view "Zion" as an ideal to which they aspire. As with "Babylon", this term comes from the Bible, where it refers to an idealised Jerusalem. Rastas use "Zion" either for Ethiopia specifically or for Africa more broadly, the latter having an almost mythological identity in Rasta discourse. Many Rastas use the term "Ethiopia" as a synonym for "Africa"; thus, Rastas in Ghana for instance described themselves as already living within "Ethiopia". Other Rastas ap
pl y the term "Zion" to Jamaica or they use it to describe a state of mind.
ellauri108.html on line 121: In portraying Africa as their "Promised Land", Rastas reflect their desire to escape what they perceive as the domination and degradation that they experience in Babylon. During the first three decades of the Rastafari movement, it
pl aced strong emphasis on the need for the African diaspora to be repatriated to Africa. To this end, various Rastas lobbied the Jamaican government and United Nations to oversee this resettlement process. Other Rastas organised their own transportation to the African continent. Critics of the movement have argued that the migration of the entire African diaspora to Africa is im
pl ausible, particularly as no African country would welcome this.
ellauri108.html on line 123: By the movement's fourth decade, the desire for physical repatriation to Africa had declined among Rastas, a change influenced by observation of the 1983–1985 famine in Ethiopia. Rather, many Rastas saw the idea of returning to Africa in a metaphorical sense, entailing the restoration of their pride and self-confidence as peo
pl e of black African descent. The term "liberation before repatriation" began to be used within the movement. Some Rastas seek to transform Western society so that they may more comfortably live within it rather than seeking to move to Africa. There are nevertheless many Rastas who continue to emphasise the need for physical resettlement of the African diaspora in Africa.
ellauri108.html on line 125: Rastafari is a millenarian movement, espousing the idea that the present age will come to an apocalyptic end. Many practitioners believe that on this Day of Judgement, Babylon will be overthrown, with Rastas being the chosen few who survive the upheaval. With Babylon destroyed, Rastas believe that humanity will be ushered into a "new age". This is conceived as being a millennium of peace, justice, and happiness in which the righteous shall live in Africa, now a paradise. In the 1980s, many Rastas believed that the Day of Judgment would happen around the year 2000. A view then common in the Rasta community was that the world's white peo
pl e would wipe themselves out through nuclear war, with black Africans then ruling the world, something that they argued was prophesied in the Book of Daniel.
ellauri108.html on line 127: Rastas do not believe that there is a specific afterlife to which individuals go following bodily death. They believe in the possibility of eternal life, and that only those who shun righteousness will actually die. The scholar of religion Leonard E. Barrett observed some Jamaican Rastas who believed that those practitioners who did die had not been faithful to Jah. He suggested that this attitude stemmed from the large numbers of young peo
pl e that were then members of the movement, and who had thus seen only few Rastas die. Another Rasta view is that those who are righteous will undergo reincarnation, with an individual's identity remaining throughout each of their incarnations. In keeping with their views on death, Rastas eschew celebrating physical death and often avoid funerals, also repudiating the practice of ancestor veneration that is common among traditional African religions.
ellauri108.html on line 129: Most Rastas share a pair of fundamental moral princi
pl es known as the "two great commandments": love of a black male God and love of neighbour if he too is black and male. Many Rastas believe that to determine whether they should undertake a certain act or not, they should consult the presence of Jah within themselves. He's the little red orange and green duck in your left ear. Do not listen to the little white Jesus duck on the right, he is the deevil.
ellauri108.html on line 133: Some Rastas have promoted activism as a means of achieving socio-political reform, while others believe in awaiting change that will be brought about through divine intervention in human affairs. In Jamaica, Rastas typically do not vote, derogatorily dismissing politics as "politricks", and rarely involve themselves in political parties or unions. The Rasta tendency to believe that socio-political change is inevitable opens the religion up to the criticism from the political left that it encourages adherents to do little or nothing to alter the status quo. Other Rastas do engage in political activism; the Ghanaian Rasta singer-songwriter Rocky Dawuni for instance was involved in campaigns promoting democratic elections, while in Grenada, many Rastas joined the Peo
pl e's Revolutionary Government formed in 1979.
ellauri108.html on line 135: Rastafari promotes what it regards as the restoration of black manhood, believing that men in the African diaspora have been emasculated by Babylon. It espouses patriarchal princi
pl es, including the idea that women should submit to male leadership. External observers—including scholars such as Cashmore and Edmonds—have claimed that Rastafari accords women an inferior position to men. Rastafari women usually accept this subordinate position and regard it as their duty to obey their men; the academic Maureen Rowe suggested that women were willing to join the religion despite its restrictions because they valued the life of structure and disci
pl ine it provided. Rasta discourse often presents women as morally weak and susceptible to deception by evil, and claims that they are impure while menstruating. Rastas legitimise these gender roles by citing Biblical passages, particularly those in the Book of Leviticus and in the writings of Paul the Apostle. The Rasta Shop is a store selling items associated with Rastafari in the U.S. state of Oregon.
ellauri108.html on line 137: Rasta women usually wear clothing that covers their head and hides their body contours. Trousers are usually avoided, in favour of long skirts. Women are expected to cover their head while praying, and in some Rasta groups this is expected of them whenever in public. Rasta discourse insists this female dress code is necessary to prevent women attracting men and presents it as an antidote to the sexual objectification of women in Babylon. Rasta men are permitted to wear whatever they choose. Although men and women took part alongside each other in early Rasta rituals, from the late 1940s and 1950s the Rasta community increasingly encouraged gender segregation for ceremonies. This was legitimised with the ex
pl anation that women were impure through menstruation and that their presence at the ceremonies would distract male participants.
ellauri108.html on line 139: As it existed in Jamaica, Rastafari did not promote monogamy. Rasta men are permitted multi
pl e female sex partners, while women are expected to reserve their sexual activity for one male partner. Marriage is not usually formalised through legal ceremonies but is a common-law affair, although many Rastas are legally married. Rasta men refer to their female partners as "queens", or "empresses", while the males in these relationships are known as "kingmen". Rastafari
pl aces great importance on family life and the raising of children, with reproduction being encouraged. The religion emphasises the
pl ace of men in child-rearing, associating this with the recovery of African manhood. Women often work, sometimes while the man raises the children at home. Rastafari typically rejects feminism, although since the 1970s growing numbers of Rasta women have called for greater gender equity in the movement. The scholar Terisa E. Turner for instance encountered Kenyan feminists who were appropriating Rastafari content to suit their political agenda. Some Rasta women have challenged gender norms by wearing their hair uncovered in public and donning trousers.
ellauri108.html on line 143: Rastas refer to their cultural and religious practices as "livity". Rastafari does not
pl ace emphasis on hierarchical structures. It has no professional priesthood, with Rastas believing that there is no need for a priest to act as mediator between the worshipper and divinity. It nevertheless has "elders", an honorific title bestowed upon those with a good reputation among the community. Although respected figures, they do not necessarily have administrative functions or responsibilities. When they do oversee ritual meetings, they are often responsible for helping to interpret current events in terms of Biblical scripture. Elders often communicate with each other through a network to
pl an movement events and form strategies.
ellauri108.html on line 145: The term "grounding" is used among Rastas to refer to the establishment of relationships between like-minded practitioners. Groundings often take
pl ace in a commune or yard, and are presided over by an elder. The elder is charged with keeping disci
pl ine and can ban individuals from attending. The number of participants can range from a handful to several hundred. Activities that take
pl ace at groundings include the
pl aying of drums, chanting, the singing of hymns, and the recitation of poetry. Cannabis, known as ganja, is often smoked. Most groundings contain only men, although some Rasta women have established their own all-female grounding circles.
ellauri108.html on line 147: One of the central activities at groundings is "reasoning". This is a discussion among assembled Rastas about the religion's princi
pl es and their relevance to current events. These discussions are supposed to be non-combative, although attendees can point out the fallacies in any arguments presented. Those assembled inform each other about the revelations that they have received through meditation and dream. Each contributor is supposed to push the boundaries of understanding until the entire group has gained greater insight into the topic under discussion. In meeting together with like-minded individuals, reasoning helps Rastas to reassure one another of the correctness of their beliefs. Rastafari meetings are opened and closed with prayers. These involve sup
pl ication of God, the sup
pl ication for the hungry, sick, and infants, and calls for the destruction of the Rastas' enemies, and then close with statements of adoration.
ellauri108.html on line 152: Nyabinghi Issemblies typically take
pl ace in rural areas, being situated in the open air or in temporary structures—known as "tem
pl es" or "tabernacles"—specifically constructed for the purpose. Any elder seeking to sponsor a Nyabinghi Issembly must have approval from other elders and requires the adequate resources to organise such an event. The assembly usually lasts between three and seven days. During the daytime, attendees engage in food preparation, ganja smoking, and reasoning, while at night they focus on drumming and dancing around bonfires. Nyabinghi Issemblies often attract Rastas from a wide area, including from different countries. They establish and maintain a sense of solidarity among the Rasta community and cultivate a feeling of collective belonging. Unlike in many other religions, rites of passage
pl ay no role in Rastafari; on death, various Rastas have been given Christian funerals by their relatives, as there are no established Rasta funeral rites.
ellauri108.html on line 154: The principal ritual of Rastafari is the smoking of ganja, also known as marijuana or cannabis or pot. Among the names that Rastas give to the
pl ant are callie, Iley, "the herb", "the holy herb", "the grass", and "the weed". Cannabis is usually smoked during groundings, although some practitioners also smoke it informally in other contexts. Some Rastas smoke it almost all of the time, something other practitioners regard as excessive, and many practitioners also ingest cannabis in a tea, as a spice in cooking, and as an ingredient in medicine. However, not all Rastas use ganja; abstainers ex
pl ain that they have already achieved a higher level of consciousness and thus do not require it.
ellauri108.html on line 158: Rastas typically smoke cannabis in the form of a large, hand-rolled cigarette known as a s
pl iff. This is often rolled together while a prayer is offered to Jah; the s
pl iff is lit and smoked only when the prayer is com
pl eted. At other times, cannabis is smoked in a water pipe referred to as a "chalice": styles include kutchies, chillums, and steamers. The pipe is passed in a counter-clockwise direction around the assembled circle of Rastas.
ellauri108.html on line 160: There are various options that might ex
pl ain how cannabis smoking came to be part of Rastafari. By the 8th century, Arab traders had introduced cannabis to Central and Southern Africa. In the 19th century, enslaved Bakongo peo
pl e arrived in Jamaica, where they established the religion of Kumina. In Kumina, cannabis was smoked during religious ceremonies in the belief that it facilitated possession by ancestral spirits. The religion was largely practiced in south-east Jamaica's Saint Thomas Parish, where a prominent early Rasta, Leonard Howell, lived while he was developing many of Rastafari's beliefs and practices; it may have been through Kumina that cannabis became part of Rastafari. A second possible source was the use of cannabis in Hindu rituals. Hindu migrants arrived in Jamaica as indentured servants from British India between 1834 and 1917, and brought cannabis with them. A Jamaican Hindu priest, Laloo, was one of Howell's spiritual advisors, and may have influenced his adoption of ganja. The adoption of cannabis may also have been influenced by the widespread medicinal and recreational use of cannabis among Afro-Jamaicans in the early 20th century. Early Rastafarians may have taken an element of Jamaican culture which they associated with their peasant past and the rejection of capitalism and sanctified it by according it Biblical correlates.
ellauri108.html on line 162: In many countries—including Jamaica—cannabis is illegal and by using it, Rastas protest the rules and regulations of Babylon. In the United States, for exam
pl e, thousands of practitioners have been arrested because of their possession of the drug. Rastas have also advocated for the legalisation of cannabis in those jurisdictions where it is illegal; in 2015, Jamaica decriminalized personal possession of marijuana up to two ounces and legalized it for medicinal and scientific purposes. In 2019, Barbados legalised Rastafari use of cannabis within religious settings and
pl edged 60 acres (24 ha) of land for Rastafari to grow it.
ellauri108.html on line 166: The bass-line of Rasta music is provided by the akete, a three-drum set, which is accompanied by percussion instruments like rattles and tambourines. A syncopated rhythm is then provided by the fundeh drum. In addition, a peta drum improvises over the rhythm. The different components of the music are regarded as dis
pl aying different symbolism; the bassline symbolises blows against Babylon, while the lighter beats denote hope for the future.
ellauri108.html on line 168: As Rastafari developed, popular music became its chief communicative medium. During the 1960s, ska was a popular musical style in Jamaica, and although its protests against social and political conditions were mild, it gave early expression to Rasta socio-political ideology. Particularly prominent in the connection between Rastafari and ska were the musicians Count Ossie and Don Drummond. Ossie was a drummer who believed that black peo
pl e needed to develop their own style of music; he was heavily influenced by Burru, an Afro-Jamaican drumming style. Ossie subsequently popularised this new Rastafari ritual music by
pl aying at various groundings and groundations around Jamaica, with songs like "Another Moses" and "Babylon Gone" reflecting Rasta influence. Rasta themes also appeared in Drummond's work, with songs such as "Reincarnation" and "Tribute to Marcus Garvey".
ellauri108.html on line 170: 1968 saw the development of reggae in Jamaica, a musical style typified by slower, heavier rhythms than ska and the increased use of Jamaican Patois. Like calypso, reggae was a medium for social commentary, although it demonstrated a wider use of radical political and Rasta themes than were previously present in Jamaican popular music. Reggae artists incorporated Rasta ritual rhythms, and also adopted Rasta chants, language, motifs, and social critiques. Songs like The Wailers' "African Herbsman" and Peter Tosh's "Legalize It" referenced cannabis use, while tracks like The Melodians' "Rivers of Babylon" and Junior Byles' "Beat Down Babylon" referenced Rasta beliefs in Babylon. Reggae gained widespread international popularity during the mid-1970s, coming to be viewed by black peo
pl e in many different countries as music of the oppressed. Many Rastas grew critical of reggae, believing that it had commercialised their religion. Although reggae contains much Rastafari symbolism, and the two are widely associated, the connection is often exaggerated by non-Rastas. Most Rastas do not listen to reggae music, and reggae has also been utilised by other religious groups, such as Protestant Evangelicals. Out of reggae came dub music; dub artists often em
pl oy Rastafari terminology, even when not Rastas themselves.
ellauri108.html on line 173: Rastas regularly use the three colours of the Ethiopian flag for their movement, although they often add black to this tricolour, symbolising the black skin of the African peo
pl e
ellauri108.html on line 175: Rastas make wide use of the pronoun "I". This denotes the Rasta view that the self is divine, and reminds each Rasta that they are not a slave and have value, worth, and dignity as a human being. For instance, Rastas use "I" in
pl ace of "me", "I and I" in
pl ace of "we", "I-ceive" in
pl ace of "receive", "I-sire" in
pl ace of "desire", "I-rate" in
pl ace of "create", and "I-men" in
pl ace of "Amen". Rastas refer to this process as "InI Consciousness" or "Isciousness". Rastas typically refer to Haile Selassie as "Haile Selassie I", thus indicating their belief in his divinity. Rastas also typically believe that the phonetics of a word should be linked to its meaning. For instance, Rastas often use the word "downpression" in
pl ace of "oppression" because oppression bears down on peo
pl e rather than lifting them up, with "up" being phonetically akin to "opp-". Similarly, they often favour "livicate" over "dedicate" because "ded-" is phonetically akin to the word "dead". In the early decades of the religion's development, Rastas often said "Peace and Love" as a greeting, although the use of this declined as Rastafari matured.
ellauri108.html on line 177: Rastas often make use of the colours red, black, green, and gold. Red, gold, and green were used in the Ethiopian flag, while, prior to the development of Rastafari, the Jamaican black nationalist activist Marcus Garvey had used red, green, and black as the colours for the Pan-African flag representing his United Negro Improvement Association. According to Garvey, the red symbolised the blood of martyrs, the black symbolised the skin of Africans, and the green represented the vegetation of the land, an interpretation endorsed by some Rastas. The colour gold is often included alongside Garvey's three colours; it has been adopted from the Jamaican flag, and is often interpreted as symbolising the minerals and raw materials which constitute Africa's wealth. Rastas often paint these colours onto their buildings, vehicles, kiosks, and other items, or dis
pl ay them on their clothing, helping to distinguish Rastas from non-Rastas and allowing adherents to recognise their co-religionists. As well as being used by Rastas, the colour set has also been adopted by Pan-Africanists more broadly, who use it to dis
pl ay their identification with Afrocentricity; for this reason it was adopted on the flags of many post-independence African states. Rastas often accompany the use of these three or four colours with the image of the Lion of Judah, also adopted from the Ethiopian flag and symbolizing Haile Selassie.
ellauri108.html on line 179: Ital is an ancient styrofoam container of food,
pl astic fork, and glass of juice.
ellauri108.html on line 180: An ital breakfast consists of ackee,
pl antain, boiled food, breadfruit, and mango-pineap
pl e juice.
ellauri108.html on line 182: Rastas seek to produce food "naturally", eating what they call ital, or "natural" food. This is often grown organically, and locally. Most Rastas adhere to the dietary laws outlined in the Book of Leviticus, and thus avoid eating pork or crustaceans. Other Rastas remain vegetarian, or vegan, a practice stemming from their interpretation of Leviticus. Many also avoid the addition of additives, including sugar and salt, to their food. Rasta dietary practices have been ridiculed by non-Rastas; in Ghana for exam
pl e, where food traditionally includes a high meat content, the Rastas' emphasis on vegetable produce has led to the joke that they "eat like sheep and goats". In Jamaica, Rasta practitioners have commercialised ital food, for instance by selling fruit juices prepared according to Rasta custom.
ellauri108.html on line 187: Rastas use their physical appearance as a means of visually demarcating themselves from non-Rastas like the whites. Male practitioners will often grow long beards, and many Rastas prefer to wear African styles of clothing, such as dashikis, rather than styles that originated in Western countries. However, it is the formation of hair into dreadlocks that is one of the most recognisable Rasta symbols. Rastas believe that dreadlocks are promoted in the Bible, specifically in the Book of Numbers, and regard them as a symbol of strength linked to the hair of the Biblical figure of Samson. They argue that their dreadlocks mark a covenant that they have made with Jah, and reflect their commitment to the idea of 'naturalness'. They also perceive the wearing of dreads as a symbolic rejection of Babylon and a refusal to conform to its norms regarding grooming aesthetics. Rastas are often critical of black peo
pl e who straighten their hair, believing that it is an attempt to imitate white European hair and thus reflects alienation from a person's African identity. Sometimes this dreadlocked hair is then shaped and styled, often inspired by a lion's mane symbolising Haile Selassie, who is regarded as "the Conquering Lion of Judah".
ellauri108.html on line 191: From the beginning of the Rastafari movement in the 1930s, adherents typically grew beards and tall hair, perhaps in imitation of Haile Selassie. The wearing of hair as dreadlocks then emerged as a Rasta practice in the 1940s; there were debates within the movement as to whether dreadlocks should be worn or not, with proponents of the style becoming dominant. There are various claims as to how this practice was adopted. One claim is that it was adopted in imitation of certain African nations, such as the Maasai, Somalis, or Oromo, or that it was inspired by the hairstyles worn by some of those involved in the anti-colonialist Mau Mau Uprising in Kenya. An alternative ex
pl anation is that it was inspired by the hairstyles of the Hindu sadhus.
ellauri108.html on line 193: The wearing of dreadlocks has contributed to negative views of Rastafari among non-Rastas, many of whom regard it as wild and unattractive. Dreadlocks remain socially stigmatised in many societies; in Ghana for exam
pl e, they are often associated with the homeless and mentally ill, with such associations of marginality extending onto Ghanaian Rastas. In Jamaica during the mid-20th century, teachers and police officers used to forcibly cut off the dreads of Rastas. In various countries, Rastas have since won legal battles ensuring their right to wear dreadlocks: in 2020, for instance, the High Court of Malawi ruled that all public schools must allow their students to wear dreadlocks.
ellauri108.html on line 201: Marcus Garvey, a prominent black nationalist theorist who heavily influenced Rastafari and is regarded as a prophet by many Rastas. The Jamaican activist Marcus Garvey, spent much of his adult life in the US and Britain. Garvey supported the idea of global racial separatism and called for part of the African diaspora to relocate to Africa. His ideas faced opposition from civil rights activists like W. E. B. Du Bois who supported racial integration, and as a mass movement, Garveyism declined in the Great Depression of the 1930s. A rumour later spread that in 1916, Garvey had called on his supporters to "look to Africa" for the crowning of a black king; this quote was never verified. However, in August 1930, Garvey's
pl ay, Coronation of an African King, was performed in Kingston. Its
pl ot revolved around the crowning of the fictional Prince Cudjoe of Sudan, although it anticipated the crowning of Haile Selassie later that year. Rastas hold Garvey in great esteem, with many regarding him as a prophet. Garvey knew of Rastafari, but took a largely negative view of the religion; he also became a critic of Haile Selassie, calling him "a great coward" who rules a "country where black men are chained and flogged".
ellauri108.html on line 210:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/82/Addis_Ababa-8e00855u.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri108.html on line 216: In the 1940s and 1950s, a more militant brand of Rastafari emerged. The vanguard of this was the House of Youth Black Faith, a group whose members were largely based in West Kingston. Backlash against the Rastas grew after a practitioner of the religion allegedly killed a woman in 1957. In March 1958, the first Rastafarian Universal Convention was held in the settlement of Back-o-Wall, Kingston. Following the event, militant Rastas unsuccessfully tried to capture the city in the name of Haile Selassie. Later that year they tried again in Spanish Town. The increasing militancy of some Rastas resulted in growing alarm about the religion in Jamaica. According to Cashmore, the Rastas became "folk devils" in Jamaican society. In 1959, the self-declared prophet and founder of the African Reform Church, Claudius Henry, sold thousands of tickets to Afro-Jamaicans, including many Rastas, for passage on a ship that he claimed would take them to Africa. The ship never arrived and Henry was charged with fraud. In 1960 he was sentenced to six years imprisonment for conspiring to overthrow the government. Henry's son was accused of being part of a paramilitary cell and executed, confirming public fears about Rasta violence. One of the most prominent clashes between Rastas and law enforcement was the Coral Gardens incident of 1963, in which an initial skirmish between police and Rastas resulted in several deaths and led to a larger roundup of practitioners. Clamping down on the Rasta movement, in 1964 the island's government im
pl emented tougher laws surrounding cannabis use.
ellauri108.html on line 218: At the invitation of Jamaica's government, Haile Selassie visited the island for the first time on 21 April 1966, with thousands of Rastas assembled in the crowd waiting to meet him at the airport. The event was the high point of their disci
pl eship for many of the religion's members. Over the course of the 1960s, Jamaica's Rasta community underwent a process of routinisation, with the late 1960s witnessing the launch of the first official Rastafarian newspaper, the Rastafarian Movement Association's Rasta Voice. The decade also saw Rastafari develop in increasingly com
pl ex ways, as it did when some Rastas began to reinterpret the idea that salvation required a physical return to Africa, instead interpreting salvation as coming through a process of mental decolonisation that embraced African approaches to life.
ellauri108.html on line 220: Whereas its membership had previously derived predominantly from poorer sectors of society, in the 1960s Rastafari began attracting support from more privileged groups like students and professional musicians. The foremost group emphasising this approach was the Twelve Tribes of Israel, whose members came to be known as "Uptown Rastas". Among those attracted to Rastafari in this decade were middle-class intellectuals like Leahcim Semaj, who called for the religious community to
pl ace greater emphasis on scholarly social theory as a method of achieving change. Although some Jamaican Rastas were critical of him, many came under the influence of the Guyanese black nationalist academic Walter Rodney, who lectured to their community in 1968 before publishing his thoughts as the pamphlet Groundings. Like Rodney, many Jamaican Rastas were influenced by the U.S.-based Black Power movement. After Black Power declined following the deaths of prominent exponents such as Malcolm X, Michael X, and George Jackson, Rastafari filled the vacuum it left for many black youth.
ellauri108.html on line 222: In the mid-1970s, reggae's international popularity ex
pl oded. The most successful reggae artist was Bob Marley, who—according to Cashmore—"more than any other individual, was responsible for introducing Rastafarian themes, concepts and demands to a truly universal audience". Reggae's popularity led to a growth in "pseudo-Rastafarians", individuals who listened to reggae and wore Rasta clothing but did not share its belief system. Many Rastas were angered by this, believing it commercialised their religion.
ellauri108.html on line 227: Through reggae, Rasta musicians became increasingly important in Jamaica's political life during the 1970s. To bolster his popularity with the electorate, Jamaican Prime Minister Michael Manley em
pl oyed Rasta imagery and courted and obtained support from Marley and other reggae musicians. Manley described Rastas as a "beautiful and remarkable peo
pl e" and carried a cane, the "rod of correction", which he claimed was a gift from Haile Selassie. Following Manley's exam
pl e, Jamaican political parties increasingly em
pl oyed Rasta language, symbols, and reggae references in their campaigns, while Rasta symbols became increasingly mainstream in Jamaican society. This helped to confer greater legitimacy on Rastafari, with reggae and Rasta imagery being increasingly presented as a core part of Jamaica's cultural heritage for the growing tourist industry. In the 1980s, a Rasta, Barbara Makeda Blake Hannah, became a senator in the Jamaican Parliament.
ellauri108.html on line 231: The mid-1990s saw a revival of Rastafari-focused reggae associated with musicians like Anthony B, Buju Banton, Luciano, Sizzla, and Ca
pl eton. From the 1990s, Jamaica also witnessed the growth of organised political activity within the Rasta community, seen for instance through campaigns for the legalisation of cannabis and the creation of political parties like the Jamaican Alliance Movement and the Imperial Ethiopian World Federation Incorporated Political Party, none of which attained more than minimal electoral support. In 1995, the Rastafari Centralization Organization was established in Jamaica as an attempt to organise the Rastafari community.
ellauri108.html on line 233: Rastafari is not a homogeneous movement and has no single administrative structure, nor any single leader. A majority of Rastas avoid centralised and hierarchical structures because they do not want to re
pl icate the structures of Babylon and because their religion's ultra-individualistic ethos
pl aces emphasis on inner divinity. The structure of most Rastafari groups is less like that of Christian denominations and is instead akin to the cellular structure of other African diasporic traditions like Haitian Vodou, Cuban Santería, and Jamaica's Revival Zion. Since the 1970s, there have been attempts to unify all Rastas, namely through the establishment of the Rastafari Movement Association, which sought political mobilisation. In 1982, the first international assembly of Rastafari groups took
pl ace in Toronto, Canada. This and subsequent international conferences, assemblies, and workshops have helped to cement global networks and cultivate an international community of Rastas.
ellauri108.html on line 239: The Bobo Ashanti sect was founded in Jamaica by Emanuel Charles Edwards through the establishment of his Ethiopia Africa Black International Congress (EABIC) in 1958. The group established a commune in Bull Bay, where they were led by Edwards until his 1994 death. The group hold to a highly rigid ethos. Edwards advocated the idea of a new trinity, with Haile Selassie as the living God, himself as the Christ, and Garvey as the prophet. Male members are divided into two categories: the "priests" who conduct religious services and the "prophets" who take part in reasoning sessions. It
pl aces greater restrictions on women than most other forms of Rastafari; women are regarded as impure because of menstruation and childbirth and so are not permitted to cook for men. The group teaches that black Africans are God's chosen peo
pl e and are superior to white Europeans, with members often refusing to associate with white peo
pl e. Bobo Ashanti Rastas are recognisable by their long, flowing robes and turbans.
ellauri108.html on line 244: The Twelve Tribes peaked in popularity during the 1970s, when it attracted artists, musicians, and many middle-class followers—Marley among them—resulting in the terms "middle-class Rastas" and "uptown Rastas" being ap
pl ied to members of the group. Carrington died in 2005, since which time the Twelve Tribes of Israel have been led by an executive council. As of 2010, it was recorded as being the largest of the centralised Rasta groups. It remains headquartered in Kingston, although it has followers outside Jamaica; the group was responsible for establishing the Rasta community in Shashamane, Ethiopia.
ellauri108.html on line 246: The Church of Haile Selassie, Inc., was founded by Abuna Foxe and operated much like a mainstream Christian church, with a hierarchy of functionaries, weekly services, and Sunday schools. In adopting this broad approach, the Church seeks to develop Rastafari's respectability in wider society. Fulfilled Rastafari is a multi-ethnic movement that has spread in popularity during the 21st century, in large part through the Internet. The Fulfilled Rastafari group accept Haile Selassie's statements that he was a man and that he was a devout Christian, and so
pl ace emphasis on worshipping Jesus through the exam
pl e set forth by Haile Selassie. The wearing of dreadlocks and the adherence to an ital diet are considered issues up to the individual.
ellauri108.html on line 248: Born in the ghettos of Kingston, Jamaica, the Rastafarian movement has captured the imagination of thousands of black youth, and some white youth, throughout Jamaica, the Caribbean, Britain, France, and other countries in Western Europe and North America. It is also to be found in smaller numbers in parts of Africa—for exam
pl e, in Ethiopia, Ghana, and Senegal—and in Australia and New Zealand, particularly among the Maori.
ellauri108.html on line 252: The Rasta message resonates with many peo
pl e who feel marginalised and alienated by the values and institutions of their society. Internationally, it has proved most popular among the poor and among marginalised youth. In valorising Africa and blackness, Rastafari provides a positive identity for youth in the African diaspora by allowing them to psychologically reject their social stigmatisation. It then provides these disaffected peo
pl e with the discursive stance from which they can challenge capitalism and consumerism, providing them with symbols of resistance and defiance. Cashmore expressed the view that "whenever there are black peo
pl e who sense an injust disparity between their own material conditions and those of the whites who surround them and tend to control major social institutions, the Rasta messages have relevance."
ellauri108.html on line 258: Some Rastas have left the religion. Clarke noted that among British Rastas, some returned to Pentecostalism and other forms of Christianity, while others embraced Islam or no religion. Some English ex-Rastas described disillusionment when the societal transformation promised by Rastafari failed to appear, while others felt that while Rastafari would be appropriate for agrarian communities in Africa and the Caribbean, it was not suited to industrialised British society. Others experienced disillusionment after developing the view that Haile Selassie had been an oppressive leader of the Ethiopian peo
pl e. Cashmore found that some British Rastas who had more militant views left the religion after finding its focus on reasoning and music insufficient for the struggle against white domination and racism.
ellauri108.html on line 264: Both through travel between the islands, and through reggae's popularity, Rastafari spread across the eastern Caribbean during the 1970s. Here, its ideas com
pl emented the anti-colonial and Afrocentric views prevalent in countries like Trinidad, Grenada, Dominica, and St Vincent. In these countries, the early Rastas often engaged in cultural and political movements to a greater extent than their Jamaican counterparts had. Various Rastas were involved in Grenada's 1979 New Jewel Movement and were given positions in the Grenadine government until it was overthrown and re
pl aced following the U.S. invasion of 1983. Although Fidel Castro's Marxist–Leninist government generally discouraged foreign influences, Rastafari was introduced to Cuba alongside reggae in the 1970s. Foreign Rastas studying in Cuba during the 1990s connected with its reggae scene and helped to further ground it in Rasta beliefs. In Cuba, most Rastas have been male and from the Afro-Cuban population.
ellauri108.html on line 268: Some Rastas in the African diaspora have followed through with their beliefs about resettlement in Africa, with Ghana and Nigeria being particularly favoured. In West Africa, Rastafari has spread largely through the popularity of reggae, gaining a larger presence in Anglophone areas than their Francophone counterparts. Caribbean Rastas arrived in Ghana during the 1960s, encouraged by its first post-independence president, Kwame Nkrumah, while some native Ghanaians also converted to the religion. The largest congregation of Rastas has been in southern parts of Ghana, around Accra, Tema, and the Cape Coast, although Rasta communities also exist in the Muslim-majority area of northern Ghana. The Rasta migrants' wearing of dreadlocks was akin to that of the native fetish priests, which may have assisted the presentation of these Rastas as having authentic African roots in Ghanaian society. However, Ghanaian Rastas have com
pl ained of social ostracism and prosecution for cannabis possession, while non-Rastas in Ghana often consider them to be "drop-outs", "too Western", and "not African enough".
ellauri108.html on line 277: During the 1950s and 1960s, Rastas were among the thousands of Caribbean migrants who settled in the United Kingdom, leading to small groups appearing in areas of London such as Brixton and Notting Hill in the 1950s. By the late 1960s, Rastafari had attracted converts from the second generation of British Caribbean peo
pl e, spreading beyond London to cities like Birmingham, Leicester, Liverpool, Manchester, and Bristol. Its spread was aided by the gang structures that had been cultivated among black British youth by the rudeboy subculture, and gained increasing attention in the 1970s through reggae's popularity. According to the 2001 United Kingdom Census there are about 5000 Rastafari living in England and Wales. Clarke described Rastafari as a small but "extremely influential" component of black British life.
ellauri108.html on line 299: As a survivor of genocide in Zimbabwe who went on to build a career as a human rights activist and lawyer on three continents, Moyo was seen not only as an impeccable hire to carry on the museum’s vision but also as a bearer of racial progress for the Jewish community as many of its institutions attempt to increase their diversity. She
pl edged to use her position to fight racism, especially in the wake of last year’s Black Lives Matter protests.
ellauri108.html on line 305: Wayne Gould and his wife were sim
pl y asking that Moyo refrain from making political statements on behalf of the museum.
ellauri108.html on line 307: “I saw a presentation from the center about bail bonds and I’m thinking, What does that have to do with Holocaust education? We donate to anything that helps educate peo
pl e about the horrors of the Holocaust as long as it is apolitical. What does some coons getting shot just because they´re black have to do with it? Us jews count as white in America, for crissake!
ellauri108.html on line 310: We will never make such a mean person happy with us and we should have no interest in a foolish attempt to
pl acate them.”
ellauri108.html on line 313: Soon, Moyo was demanding an outside investigation into the board’s conduct, and com
pl ained that her labor was being extracted from her to the point of abuse. In increasingly tense emails, she brought up past instances in which she was compelled to clean toilets and work weekends, for exam
pl e.
ellauri108.html on line 369: Jemeninjuutalainen rusehtava Shoshana suoristi mustan kikkaran tukkansa mennessään esittäytymään Hannun vanhemmille Ritvalle ja Paavolle. Opettajapariskunta tuijotti sitä mesmeröityneenä ja suhauttelivat sen nimen äshiä keittiössä kuin vihaiselle koiralle: Sh sh. Olis Hannun kannattanut kuzua sitä vaan suomalaisittain Susannaxi, niin eivät olis ainakaan ässhät shuhissheet. Suomalaiset Susannat on pääsääntöisesti
pl atinum blondeja, toki poikkeuxiakin on, esim. Susanna Ruokamo.
ellauri108.html on line 404: The story takes
pl ace about 600 years before Jesus Christ was born when King Nebuchadnezzar of Babylon besieged Jerusalem and took captive many of Israel's finest citizens. Among those deported to Babylon were four young men from the tribe of Judah: Daniel, Hananiah, Mishael, and Azariah.
ellauri108.html on line 408: These four Hebrew youths soon proved themselves to be exceptionally wise. As a result, they found favor with King Nebuchadnezzar. When Daniel turned out to be the only man capable of interpreting one of Nebuchadnezzar's troubling dreams, the king
pl aced him in a high position over the whole province of Babylon, including over all of the wise men of the land. At Daniel's request, the king appointed Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego as Daniel's advisors.
ellauri108.html on line 412: King Nebuchadnezzar had a huge golden image built as a symbol of his power and glory. He then commanded that his peo
pl e bow down and worship this image whenever they heard the sound of his musical herald. Those who disobeyed the order would be thrown into an immense, blazing furnace.
ellauri108.html on line 445: There are no angels, Benjy ex
pl ains. just man. What about Jah, I ask. That's what's meant by I and I, he re
pl ies. Me and myself, us two together, in this flesh, at this moment. I'm the only angel I'll ever need. I sit at my right and left ears in mini size as superego and id, and whisper to myself.
ellauri108.html on line 461: Its emphasis is on the purging of any belief in the inferiority of black peo
pl e, and the superiority of white peo
pl e, from the minds of its followers.[99] Rastafari is therefore Afrocentric, equating blackness with the African continent, and endorsing a form of Pan-Africanism.
ellauri108.html on line 463: Practitioners of Rastafari identify themselves with the ancient Israelites—God's chosen peo
pl e in the Old Testament—and believe that black Africans broadly or Rastas more specifically are either the descendants or the reincarnations of this ancient peo
pl e.[102] This is similar to beliefs in Judaism,[103] although many Rastas believe that contemporary Jews' status as the descendants of the ancient Israelites is a false claim.[104] Rastas typically believe that black Africans are God's chosen peo
pl e, meaning that they made a covenant with him and thus have a special responsibility. Rastafari espouses the view that this, the true identity of black Africans, has been lost and needs to be reclaimed. Some Rasta sects reject the notion that a white European can ever be a legitimate Rasta.
ellauri108.html on line 467: Rastafari teaches that the black African diaspora are exiles living in "Babylon", a term which it ap
pl ies to Western society. For Rastas, European colonialism and global capitalism are regarded as manifestations of Babylon, while police and soldiers are viewed as its agents.The term "Babylon" is adopted because of its Biblical associations. In the Old Testament, Babylon is the Mesopotamian city where the Israelites were held captive, exiled from their homeland, between 597 and 586 BCE; Rastas compare the exile of the Israelites in Mesopotamia to the exile of the African diaspora outside Africa. In the New Testament, "Babylon" is used as a euphemism for the Roman Empire, which was regarded as acting in a destructive manner that was akin to the way in which the ancient Babylonians acted. Rastas perceive the exile of the black African diaspora in Babylon as an experience of great suffering, with the term "suffering" having a significant
pl ace in Rasta discourse.
ellauri108.html on line 470:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/67/Ethiopia_-_Location_Map_%282013%29_-_ETH_-_UNOCHA.svg/598px-Ethiopia_-_Location_Map_%282013%29_-_ETH_-_UNOCHA.svg.png" />
ellauri108.html on line 474: Rastas turn to Biblical scripture to ex
pl ain the Atlantic slave trade, believing that the enslavement, exile, and ex
pl oitation of black Africans was punishment for failing to live up to their status as Jah's chosen peo
pl e.
ellauri108.html on line 477: Rastas view "Zion" as an ideal to which they aspire. As with "Babylon", this term comes from the Bible, where it refers to an idealised Jerusalem. Rastas use "Zion" either for Ethiopia specifically or for Africa more broadly, the latter having an almost mythological identity in Rasta discourse. Many Rastas use the term "Ethiopia" as a synonym for "Africa"; thus, Rastas in Ghana for instance described themselves as already living within "Ethiopia". Other Rastas ap
pl y the term "Zion" to Jamaica or they use it to describe a state of mind.
ellauri108.html on line 479: During the first three decades of the Rastafari movement, it
pl aced strong emphasis on the need for the African diaspora to be repatriated to Africa. To this end, various Rastas lobbied the Jamaican government and United Nations to oversee this resettlement process. Other Rastas organised their own transportation to the African continent. Critics of the movement have argued that the migration of the entire African diaspora to Africa is im
pl ausible, particularly as no African country would welcome this.
ellauri108.html on line 481: By the movement's fourth decade, the desire for physical repatriation to Africa had declined among Rastas, a change influenced by observation of the 1983–1985 famine in Ethiopia. Rather, many Rastas saw the idea of returning to Africa in a metaphorical sense, entailing the restoration of their pride and self-confidence as peo
pl e of black African descent.
ellauri108.html on line 487: In the 1980s, many Rastas believed that the Day of Judgment would happen around the year 2000. A view then common in the Rasta community was that the world's white peo
pl e would wipe themselves out through nuclear war, with black Africans then ruling the world, something that they argued was prophesied in the Book of Daniel.
ellauri108.html on line 489: Rastas do not believe that there is a specific afterlife to which individuals go following bodily death. They believe in the possibility of eternal life, and that only those who shun righteousness will actually die. The scholar of religion Leonard E. Barrett observed some Jamaican Rastas who believed that those practitioners who did die had not been faithful to Jah. He suggested that this attitude stemmed from the large numbers of young peo
pl e that were then members of the movement, and who had thus seen only few Rastas die. Another Rasta view is that those who are righteous will undergo reincarnation, with an individual's identity remaining throughout each of their incarnations. In keeping with their views on death, Rastas eschew celebrating physical death and often avoid funerals, also repudiating the practice of ancestor veneration that is common among traditional African religions.
ellauri109.html on line 28:
Grabsprüche play:none">Nekrologeja
ellauri109.html on line 39:
VIDEO
ellauri109.html on line 254: Väitöskirjassaan Rakkauden välittäjä (1997) Hankamäki tarkastelee Weilia yhtenä
pl atonistisen mystiikan edustajana, jonka ajattelussa eksistenssifilosofinen ihmiskäsitys ja hyve-eettinen moraaliajattelu liittyivät yhteen. Toisessa väitöskirjassaan (2016) Sosiaalipsykologian sydän Hankamäki tulkitsee symbolista interaktionismia pragmatismin vastaukseksi behavioristisen ihmistutkimuksen haasteisiin.
ellauri109.html on line 258: Kirjassa Enkelirakkaus: Filosofia ja uskonto homoseksuaalisuutena (2008) Hankamäki väittää, että kartesiolaiselle ajattelulle ominaiset jaottelut järkeen ja tunteisiin, tietoon ja todellisuuteen, kieleen ja kokemukseen sekä Jumalaan ja maailmaan ovat seuranneet heteroseksuaalisten filosofien oidipuskom
pl ekseista sekä filosofian homoseksuaalisen olemuksen torjumisesta. Sen sijaan samaa sukupuolta olevien ihmisten yhteiseen kokemusmaailmaan perustuva merkitysten oppiminen voisi luoda parhaat edellytykset filosofialle ja yhteisymmärrykselle.
ellauri109.html on line 276: In March 2017, Searle became the subject of sexual assault allegations. The Los Angeles Times reported: "A new lawsuit alleges that university officials failed to properly respond to com
pl aints that John Searle, an 84-year-old renowned philosophy professor, sexually assaulted his 24-year-old research associate last July and cut her pay when she rejected his advances." The case brought to light several earlier com
pl aints against Searle, on which Berkeley allegedly had failed to act.
ellauri109.html on line 278: The lawsuit, filed in a California court on March 21, 2017, sought damages both from Searle and from the Regents of the University of California as his em
pl oyers. It also claims that Jennifer Hudin, the director of the John Searle Center for Social Ontology, where the com
pl ainant had been em
pl oyed as an assistant to Searle, has stated that Searle "has had sexual relationships with his students and others in the past in exchange for academic, monetary or other benefits". After news of the lawsuit became public, several previous allegations of sexual harassment by Searle were also revealed.
ellauri109.html on line 280: On June 19, 2019, following campus disci
pl inary proceedings by Berkeley's Office for the Prevention of Harassment and Discrimination (OPHD), University of California President Janet Napolitano approved a recommendation that Searle have his emeritus status revoked, after a determination that he violated university policies against sexual harassment.
ellauri109.html on line 330: What the fuck just open up the corpse and retrieve the papers. The
pl ot sim
pl y sucks. Kleist was clearly not the sharpest pencil in the box.
ellauri109.html on line 332: In the spring of 1799, the 21-year-old Kleist wrote a letter to his half-sister Ulrike [de] in which he found it "incomprehensible how a human being can live without a life
pl an" (Lebens
pl an). In effect, Kleist sought and discovered an overwhelming sense of security by looking to the future with a definitive
pl an for his life. It brought him happiness and assured him of confidence, especially knowing life without a
pl an only saw despair and discomfort. The irony of his suicide is the fodder of his critics.
ellauri109.html on line 383: Flaubert's dozens of long letters to her, in 1846–1847, then especially between 1851 and 1855, are one of the many joys of his correspondence. Many of them are a precious source of information on the progress of the writing of Madame Bovary. In many others, Flaubert gives lengthy appreciations and critical comments on the poems that Louise Colet sent to him for his judgment before offering them for publication. The most interesting of these comments show the vast differences between her and him on the matter of style and literary expression, she being a gushing Romanticist, he dee
pl y convinced that the writer must abstain from gush and self-indulgence.
ellauri109.html on line 387: En 1840, le journaliste Alphonse Karr attribue la paternité de l'enfant qu'elle porte à son amant Victor Cousin dans un article intitulé Une piqûre de Cousin. Furieuse, Louise Colet l'agresse avec un couteau de cuisine qu'elle lui
pl ante dans le dos. Alphonse Karr s'en tire avec une égratignure, et renonce à porter
pl ainte au grand soulagement de Victor Cousin. Il se contente de mettre le couteau dont elle avait voulu le frapper sur une étagère avec cette inscription «Donné par Madame Louise Colet (Dans le dos)». Louise Colet est inhumée dans le vieux cimetière de Verneuil-sur-Avre, où résidait sa fille. En 2016, sa tombe est à l'abandon.
ellauri109.html on line 389: Bien que jouissant d'une célébrité personnelle et d'un succès littéraire certains à son époque, l’œuvre de Louise Colet a connu un certain déclin au cours du XXe siècle, absente de la
pl upart des manuels d'histoire littéraire. Sa rupture difficile avec Gustave Flaubert à partir de 1856 pourrait y être pour quelque chose, celui-ci ayant dès lors dénigré fermement l’œuvre de son ancienne maîtresse, que d'autres comme Victor Hugo acclamaient.
ellauri109.html on line 429: [...] Pauvre cher bougre, j’ai bien envie de t’embrasser. Je serai content quand je reverrai ta figure. [...] Adieu, je t’embrasse et suis
pl us que jamais "Maréchal de Richelieu, juste-au-corps bleu, Mousquetaire gris, régence et cardinal Dubois", sacrebleu !
ellauri109.html on line 436: Lui est un roman
pl utôt autobiographique écrit par Louise Colet (1810-1879), un écrivain parisien. Il s'agit de décrire sa relation avec Alfred de Musset, qui la poursuivit de ses assiduités, tout pendant qu'elle conservait une relation distante et épistolaire avec Gustave Flaubert. C'est l'occasion aussi de revenir sur les amours tourmentées de Sand et de Musset, en particulier les épisodes à Fontainebleau et en Italie, déjà largement évoqués dans trois autres romans, La Confession d'un enfant du siècle de Musset, Elle et Lui de Sand, et Lui et elle de Paul de Musset, le frère de l'écrivain.
ellauri109.html on line 443: Il donnera
pl us tard, pour cause de leur rupture, son refus d’une aliénation tant physique que sentimentale, qui revient selon lui à une forme d’abdication virile, de castration.
ellauri109.html on line 461: Il me dé
pl aît pour avoir mis en axiomes et pratique « la Poésie du cœur » (double farce à l'usage des impuissants et des charlatans). En voilà un qui a été peu critique ! Il me paraît avoir eu sur l'humanité le coup d'œil d'un coiffeur sentimental ! Toujours « mon pauvre cœur », toujours les larmes ! — je crois du reste que la mère Colet l'a reproduit assez fidèlement ? et il est facile maintenant de le bien connaître. As-tu remarqué ses affectations de noblesse ? Ses éternels bals aux ambassades ? Comme c'est beau cet homme qui porte sa douleur dans le monde ! — telle qu'un bijou rare, pour l'ébahissement de ces Messieurs et ces Dames !
ellauri109.html on line 474: Translations of the fable were familiar enough in Britain but the subject of male bonding left some readers uneasy (as it very obviously did Elizur Wright). Eventually there appeared an 18th-century version in octosyllabic cou
pl ets that claimed to be ‘improved from Fontaine’. Here the cou
pl e are a male and female named Columbo and Turturella.
ellauri109.html on line 507: From the start, critics com
pl ained about the ostensible sameness of Roth’s books, their narcissism and narrowness—or, as he himself put it, comparing his own work to his father’s conversation, “Family, family, family, Newark, Newark, Newark, Jew, Jew, Jew.” Roth turned self-obsession into art. He was a consummate bullshit artist.
ellauri109.html on line 511: Many literary figures have dreaded the spectre of the biographer. Charles Dickens, Wilkie Collins, Walt Whitman, Henry James, and Sylvia Plath are but a few who put their letters and journals into the fire. Lea poltti päiväkirjansa kommunistien pelossa ja repi lottapuvun matonkuteixi. James admitted to his nephew and literary executor that his singular desire in old age was to “frustrate as utterly as possible the postmortem ex
pl oiter.”
ellauri109.html on line 515: A fiction writer’s life is his treasure, his ore, his savings account, his jungle gym,” Updike wrote. “As long as I am alive, I don’t want somebody else
pl aying on my jungle gym—disturbing my children, quizzing my ex-wife, bugging my present wife, seeking for Judases among my friends, rummaging through yellowing old clippings, quoting in extenso bad reviews I would rather forget, and getting everything slightly wrong.”
ellauri109.html on line 521: "So you’re going to redeem Lonoff’s reputation as a writer by ruining it as a man. Re
pl ace the genius of the genius with the secret of the genius.”
ellauri109.html on line 523: Zuckerman considers the biographer a ruthless seducer, out to cut the artist down to comprehensible and assailable size—to dis
pl ace the fiction with the real story. And this Zuckerman cannot bear. He was unnervingly present, a condor on a branch, unblinking, alive to everything.
ellauri109.html on line 527: Mid-century Jewish Newark echoes with the sounds of the cafeterias and the butcher shops, women
pl aying mah-jongg at picnics in the park, weary fathers heading off to the shvitz on Mercer Street, where they gossiped and drank amid a “concerto of farts.”
ellauri109.html on line 539: Roth mined his life for his characters from the beginning. He also found himself liberated, as the fifties wore on, by the exam
pl e of two older Jewish-American writers. Saul Bellow’s “The Adventures of Augie March” helped “close the gap between Thomas Mann and Damon Runyon,” Roth recalled. Bernard Malamud’s “The Assistant” showed him that “you can write about the Jewish poor, you can write about the Jewish inarticulate, you can describe things near at hand.”
ellauri109.html on line 551: Kleinschmidt published a journal article in which he describes the case of a “successful Southern
pl aywright” with an overbearing mother: “His rebellion was sexualized, leading to compulsive masturbation which provided an outlet for a myriad of hostile fantasies. These same masturbatory fantasies he both acted out and channeled into his writing.” Roth, who was obviously Kleinschmidt’s “
pl aywright,” saw the article just after finishing the novel. He spent multi
pl e sessions berating Kleinschmidt for this “psychoanalytic cartoon” and yet continued his analysis with him for years.
ellauri109.html on line 555: Roth could not stand the lurid brand of notoriety. Years later, he told friends that he wished he’d never published “Portnoy’s Com
pl aint.” It was by far his best-selling book.
ellauri109.html on line 561: Cold-hearted betrayer of the most intimate confessions, cutthroat caricaturist of your own loving parents, graphic reporter of encounters with women to whom you have been dee
pl y bound by trust, by sex, by love—no, the virtue racket ill becomes you.
ellauri109.html on line 563: Roth spent much of his life in pain. Many spinal surgeries followed his mishap in the Army. Diagnosed with heart disease before he was fifty, Roth lived with an acute sense of imminent catastrophe. In 1989, when he was fifty-six, he was swimming laps in his pool and was overwhelmed by chest pain. The next day, he had quintu
pl e-bypass surgery.
ellauri109.html on line 603: That first summer I spent a week in Connecticut, interviewing him six hours a day in his studio. Now and then we had to take bathroom breaks, and we could hear each other’s muffled streams through the door. One lovely sun-dap
pl ed afternoon I sat on his studio couch, listening to our greatest living novelist empty his bladder, and reflected that this was about as good as it gets for an American literary biographer.
ellauri109.html on line 609: At the University of Pennsylvania, a friend and colleague—acting, the friend admits, almost as a “pimp”—helped Roth fill the last seats in his oversubscribed classes with particularly attractive undergraduates. Roth’s treatment of a young woman named Felicity (a pseudonym), a friend and house guest of Claire Bloom’s daughter, is particularly disturbing. Roth made a sexual overture to Felicity, which she rebuffed; the next morning, he left her an irate note accusing her of “sexual hysteria.” When Bloom wrote about the incident in her memoir, Roth answered in his unpublished “Notes” with a sense of affront rather than penitence: “This is what peo
pl e are. This is what peo
pl e do. . . . Hate me for what I am, not for what I’m not.”
ellauri109.html on line 611: The reaction to “Portnoy’s Com
pl aint,” a decade later, was of another order. “This is the book for which all anti-Semites have been praying,” Gershom Scholem, the eminent scholar of Jewish history and mysticism, wrote. “I daresay that with the next turn of history, which will not be long delayed, this book will make all of us defendants at court.”
ellauri109.html on line 668: On 1 December 1663 Dryden married Lady Elizabeth Howard (died 1714). The marriage was at St. Swithin's, London, and the consent of the parents is noted on the licence, though Lady Elizabeth was then about twenty-five. She was the object of some scandals, well or ill founded; it was said that Dryden had been bullied into the marriage by her
pl aywright brothers. A small estate in Wiltshire was settled upon them by her father. The lady's intellect and temper were apparently not good; her husband was treated as an inferior by those of her social status. Oi, monitoinikone! Olli, minä olen mistelin alla! (Doris ja sen menestynyt mies on etelässä joululomalla.)
ellauri109.html on line 689: A Poem, in Three Parts (1687) is an allegory in heroic cou
pl ets by John Dryden. At some 2600 lines it is much the longest of Dryden's poems, translations excepted, and perhaps the most mind-numbing. Luckily, no one has repeated it.
ellauri109.html on line 709: Dryden's poem, "An Essay upon Satire," contained a number of attacks on King Charles II, his mistresses and courtiers, but most pointedly on the Earl of Rochester, a notorious womaniser. Rochester responded by hiring thugs who attacked Dryden whilst walking back from Will's Coffee House (a popular London coffee house where the Wits gathered to gossip, drink and conduct their business) back to his house on Gerrard Street. Dryden survived the attack, offering £50 for the identity of the thugs
pl aced in the London Gazette, and a Royal Pardon if one of them would confess. No one claimed the reward.
ellauri109.html on line 712: Dryden translated works by Horace, Juvenal, Ovid, Lucretius, and Theocritus, a task which he found far more satisfying than writing for the stage. In 1694 he began work on what would be his most ambitious and defining work as translator, The Works of Virgil (1697), which was published by subscription. The publication of the translation of Virgil was a national event and brought Dryden the sum of £1,400. For exam
pl e, take lines 789–795 of Book 2 when Aeneas sees and receives a message from the ghost of his wife, Creusa.
ellauri109.html on line 749: One of the first attacks on Dryden's reputation was by William Wordsworth, who com
pl ained that Dryden's descriptions of natural objects in his translations from Virgil were much inferior to the originals. However, several of Wordsworth's contemporaries, such as George Crabbe, Lord Byron, and Walter Scott (who edited Dryden's works), were still keen admirers of Dryden.
ellauri109.html on line 750: John Keats admired the "Fables. " Matthew Arnold famously dismissed him. T. S. Eliot wrote that he was "his ancestor," and had like Eliot a "common
pl ace mind."
ellauri109.html on line 753: A heroic cou
pl et is a traditional form for English poetry, commonly used in epic and narrative poetry, and consisting of a rhyming pair of lines in iambic pentameter. Use of the heroic cou
pl et was pioneered by Geoffrey Chaucer in the Legend of Good Women and the Canterbury Tales, and generally considered to have been perfected by John Dryden and Alexander Pope in the Restoration Age and early 18th century respectively. A frequently-cited exam
pl e illustrating the use of heroic cou
pl ets is this passage from Cooper's Hill by John Denham, part of his description of the Thames:
ellauri109.html on line 756: My great exam
pl e, as it is my theme! sua esimerkkinä, enkä ainoastaan aiheena!
ellauri109.html on line 813: She went in search of documents that would reveal the truth about what happened to Hanna, and was dee
pl y disturbed by what she found.
ellauri109.html on line 834: "All these peo
pl e came in very, very difficult conditions and it's a story of chaos," Segev says. Samaa voisi sanoa nazi-Saxasta.
ellauri109.html on line 847: Yehuda had a happy childhood, raised in nearby Afula by Batia and Asher Kantor, an Ashkenazi Jewish cou
pl e originally from Eastern Europe.
ellauri109.html on line 848: Photographs show he had a darker com
pl exion than his relatives and school friends.
ellauri109.html on line 857: His biological siblings had never been told of the existence of an older brother and were unable to ex
pl ain the circumstances of his adoption.
ellauri109.html on line 859: "I'm happy the circle was com
pl eted and I now know the history, the origin and I know which family [I'm from] from a genetic point of view," he says.
ellauri110.html on line 28:
Kirjoita hevoseläimestäsi! play:none">Pollerunoilua
ellauri110.html on line 115: Valmistuttuaan di
pl omi-insinööriksi 1967 Keijola siirtyi liike-elämään. Hän työskenteli IBM:n palveluksessa Zambiassa, Yhdysvalloissa ja Britanniassa. Samanaikaisesti hän täydensi opintojaan ja teki tutkimustyötä, johti Tekes-projekteja ja väitteli tekniikan tohtoriksi vuonna 2003. Sillä oli nätti fixu vaimo ja se ajoi ensimmäisten joukossa Kia-autoa.
ellauri110.html on line 124: Gulliver describes the land as "divided by long rows of trees, not regularly
pl anted but naturally growing", with a "great
pl enty of grass, and several fields of oats".
ellauri110.html on line 129:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/81/The_Servants_Drive_a_Herd_of_Yahoos_into_the_Field%2C_from_Gulliver%27s_Travels.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri110.html on line 135: It is possible to interpret the Houyhnhnms in a number of different ways. One interpretation could be a sign of Swift's liberal views on race, or one could regard Gulliver's preference (and his immediate division of Houyhnhnms into color-based hierarchies) as absurd and the sign of his self-deception. It is now generally accepted that the story involving the Houyhnhnms embody a wholly pessimistic view of the
pl ace of man and the meaning of his existence in the universe. In a modern context the story might be seen as presenting an early exam
pl e of animal rights concerns, especially in Gulliver's account of how horses are cruelly treated in his society and the reversal of roles. The story is a possible inspiration for Pierre Boulle's novel Planet of the Apes.
ellauri110.html on line 139: The Houyhnhnms' lack of passion surfaces during the scheduled visit of "a friend and his family" to the home of Gulliver's master "upon some affair of importance". On the day of the visit, the mistress of his friend and her children arrive very late. She made no excuses "first for her husband" who had died just that morning and she had to remain to make the proper arrangements for a "convenient
pl ace where his body should be laid". Gulliver remarked that "she behaved herself at our house as cheerfully as the rest".
ellauri110.html on line 141: A further exam
pl e of the lack of humanity and emotion in the Houyhnhnms is that their laws reason that each cou
pl e produce two children, one male and one female. In the event that a marriage produced two offspring of the same sex, the parents would take their children to the annual meeting and trade one with a cou
pl e who produced two children of the opposite sex. This was viewed as his spoofing and or criticising the notion that the "ideal" family produces children of both sexes. George Orwell viewed the Houyhnhnm society as one whose members try to be as close to dead as possible while alive and matter as little as possible in life and death.
ellauri110.html on line 147: On the other hand, Swift was profoundly mistrustful of attempts at reason that resulted in either hubris (for exam
pl e, the Projectors satirised in A Tale of a Tub or in Book III of Gulliver's Travels) or immorality (such as the speaker of A Modest Proposal, who offers an entirely logical and wholly immoral proposal for cannibalism). The Houyhnhnms embody both the good and the bad side of reason, for they have the pure language Swift wished for and the amorally rational approach to solving the problems of humanity (Yahoos); the extirpation of the Yahoo population by the horses is very like the speaker of A Modest Proposal.
ellauri110.html on line 304: The domestic circumstances were apparently not suitable for writing and the work proceeded in fits and starts. "Still cannot finish a small novella I am now engaged with: guests interfere. Starting with 23 December crowds of peo
pl e are there in my house, I crave for solitude, but as soon as I find myself on my own, I feel nothing but resentment and disgust, remembering how the day had been thrown away. Eating and chatting, eating and chatting all day long," he com
pl ained in a 29 December letter to Alexey Suvorin. According to Chekhov's 17 March letter to Viktor Goltsev, the story had been com
pl eted in early March.
ellauri110.html on line 313:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/ef/Isaac_Levitan_selfportrait1880.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri110.html on line 318: Lydia Volchaninova, a good-looking, but very stern and opinionated young teacher with somewhat dictatorial inclinations is dee
pl y engaged in the affairs of the local zemstvo. Devoted to the cause of helping peasants, she is interested in doing and speaking of nothing but practical work, mostly in the fields of medicine and education. Lydia dislikes the protagonist, a landscape painter, who frequently visits their house. From time to time the two clash over problems of both the rural community and Russia as a whole.
ellauri110.html on line 322: The following day he learns that Zhenya and her mother had departed. A boy hands him a note from Znenya, which reads: "I have told my sister everything and she insists on my parting from you. I could not hurt her by disobeying. God will give you happiness. If you knew how bitterly mamma and I have cried." The painter leaves the
pl ace too. The last glimpse of hope to fill his lonely life with any kind of meaning is now gone, and the person who robbed him of it was Lydia, the one who cared for nothing but bettering other peo
pl e's lives. Time passes, but he cannot forget Zhenya and deep in his heart knows she still thinks of him, too.
ellauri110.html on line 344: The diary gives a detailed account of Pepys's personal life. He was fond of wine,
pl ays, and the company of other peo
pl e. He also spent time evaluating his fortune and his
pl ace in the world. He was always curious and often acted on that curiosity, as he acted upon almost all his impulses. Periodically, he would resolve to devote more time to hard work instead of leisure. For exam
pl e, in his entry for New Year's Eve, 1661, he writes: "I have newly taken a solemn oath about abstaining from
pl ays and wine…" The following months reveal his lapses to the reader; by 17 February, it is recorded, "Here I drank wine upon necessity, being ill for the want of it."
ellauri110.html on line 495:
Ote Handen pl okista
ellauri110.html on line 688: Ero ei ole helppo mutta uusi suhde auttaa. Kyrvänpää työntyy Järvenpäähän, työntää Louhen syrjään. Kristiinan lapset (3k
pl ) ovat pahoillaan.
ellauri110.html on line 767: Wuonna 1759 Kefäkuun 12:ta päiwänä oli Wernamon markkinoille faapunut tuntematon mies,fuuri ja luja wartaloltaan, pitkäpartainen ja wanhanaikaifella ulkonä
pl lä, kantaen feläsfään laatikkoa, jommoista fuutarit käyttiwät. Hän oli puettuna pitkään takkiin, jonka päälline noli tuhottu hewosenjouhista, houfut ja liiwi oliwat kameelinnahasta, fekä pääsfä päähine, talwilakin kaltainen, tehty tiikerintaljasta. Hän näytti hywin furullifelta, ja kun häneltä kyfyttiin, kuka hän oli, oli hän wastannut, että hän oli tuo onneton fuutari, ja oli hän monella tawalla kehoittanut kanfaa tekemään parannusta. Seuraawana päiwänä hän taas oli poisfa.
ellauri110.html on line 885:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/56/Portrait_of_Alexander_Pushkin_(Orest_Kiprensky%2C_1827).PNG/1200px-Portrait_of_Alexander_Pushkin_(Orest_Kiprensky%2C_1827).PNG" height="200px" />
ellauri110.html on line 886:
ploads/2014/07/mungo6.png" height="200px" />
ellauri110.html on line 963: El com
pl icado mundo Monimutkainen maailma
ellauri110.html on line 964: sim
pl ificó mi vida. yxinkertaisti elämäni.
ellauri110.html on line 965: La gente sim
pl e Yxinkertaiset ihmiset
ellauri110.html on line 966: com
pl icó mi mundo. mutkistivat sen.
ellauri110.html on line 983: Ihminen on osa eläinkuntaa, pohtii Hande, siinä hänen perintöosansa. "Mutta useimmat ihmisistä ovat sentään kaikkea muutakin kuin pelkkiä eläimiä. Ainaskin ihminen epäröi ennenkuin syö kaltaisensa eikä aivan heti myöskään alistu syötäväxi." Siinäkö se on se suuri ero? No jo tuli taas likilaskuinen pulla Handelta. Termiittiapina syö kaikkea mikä liikkuu,
pl us kasveja. Pian on koko lautanen ja patakin nuoltu puhtaaxi. Sikakin on kaikkiruokainen, ja tavoiltaan siistimpi.
ellauri110.html on line 989: Lähestyttäessä loppupelejä Hande joutuu miettimään, mitä saa kertoa ja mitä fabuloida. Kuolleista ja varsinkin elävistä. Siinä suhteessa paasailu on mukavempaa, senkun paasaa, kun kukaan ei pääse lukemaan. Onhan se tietysti vielä solipsistisempää kuin Handen jaaritus. Hande sanoo
pl okissa: Lue
pl iis mun muistelmat, tää pyyntö tulee suoraan sydämestä. Mixi se on sille niin vitun tärkeetä? Kai se on taas kalastelemassa kehuja, tai Belovin Salen lailla ajattelee että lukijat pitää sen meemit elossa. Se on älyvapaata, mutta niin ajattelevat kaikki kirjailevat narsistit.
ellauri110.html on line 1048: “Once upon a time, mendicants, there was a Teacher called Araka. He was a religious founder and was free of sensual desire. He had many hundreds of disci
pl es, and he taught them like this: ‘Brahmins, life as a human is short, brief, and fleeting, full of pain and misery. Think about this and wake up! Do what’s good and live the spiritual life, for no-one born can escape death.
ellauri110.html on line 1068: Things that prevent you from eating include anger, pain, sickness, sabbath, or being unable to get food. So mendicants, for a human being with a hundred years life span I have counted the life span, the limit of the life span, the seasons, the years, the months, the fortnights, the nights, the days, the meals, and the things that prevent them from eating. Out of compassion, I’ve done what a teacher should do who wants what’s best for their disci
pl es. Here are these roots of trees, and here are these empty huts. Practice absorption, mendicants! Don’t be negligent! Don’t regret it later! This is my instruction to you.”
ellauri110.html on line 1077: I hope that a revised version of these conversations will eventually appear in book form. This published version will include extensive accompanying notes, indicating the sources of the views ascribed to Dostoevsky and, where relevant, references to secondary literature. This will especially be in cases where, for exam
pl e, the views spoken by Dostoevsky may involve controversial points of interpretation or where his own documented views may require comment for twenty-first century readers. However, this is primarily a work of fiction and although it is supported by scholarship and, I hope, raises questions that are of interest to scholars, it is to be read in the way we might read any work of fiction, where whatever instruction the work may offer is accompanied by a element of entertainment.
ellauri110.html on line 1106: In an age before psychology was a modern scientific field, Fyodor Dostoyevsky (November 11, 1821 – February 9, 1881) was a Russian writer of realist fiction and essays that ex
pl ored the depths of the human psyche. Known for acclaimed novels Crime and Punishment, The Idiot and The Brothers Karamazov, Dostoyevsky´s work discusses the human mind in a world full of political and social upheaval in 19th century Russia, becoming the forerunner of existentialism.
ellauri110.html on line 1121: Uncle was Prince K, a doddering and decrepit old fop who has come into money and who is paying a visit to the provinces. Maria Alexandrovna decides to try to marry off her beautiful young daughter Zenaida to him, but the whole town has had a snootful of her and tries to buck her
pl ans at every turn. Still, she manages to come out in the end after a series of reverses. Not for nothing does Dosto compare her (too)xo to Napoleon Bonaparte. Dosto bore a grudge to the French and English because they had laughed at his accent. Napoleon and Shakespeare, damn the lot.
ellauri111.html on line 28:
Kirjailijan päiväkirja play:none">Hymistelyä
ellauri111.html on line 31:
Onx toi muka Fedja pienenä? Kuka toi naisoletettu on? Mikä pl ayboy-juoma on sillä kädessä?
ellauri111.html on line 42:
ploads/2016/03/2014-12-15-DS-thumb-1.jpg" />
ellauri111.html on line 106: Roman Catholics may tell you, "You Protestants are missing part of the Bible. We have the rest of it." These peo
pl e's leaders (popes, priests, etc.) have led them astray to this wrong belief. This comment about missing books can throw peo
pl e off, but it no longer has to. These popish additions to the Bible are commonly called the Apocrypha or sometimes the Deuterocanonical books. This is a short treatise on WHY these books are not in the Bible.
ellauri111.html on line 112: At the Council of Trent (1546) the Roman Catholic institution pronounced the following apocryphal books sacred. They asserted that the apocryphal books together with unwritten tradition are of God and are to be received and venerated as the Word of God. So now you have the Bible, the Apocrypha and Catholic Tradition as co-equal sources of truth for the Catholic. In reality, it seems obvious that the Bible is the last source of truth for Catholics. Roman Catholic doctrine comes primarily from tradition stuck together with a few Bible names. In my reading of Catholic materials, I find notes like this: "You have to keep the Bible in perspective." Catholics have been deceived into not believing that the Bible is God's com
pl ete revelation for man (but they can come out of these deceptions in an instant if they will only believe the Bible as it is written) .
ellauri111.html on line 120: The apocryphal books were never acknowledged as sacred scriptures by the Jews, custodians of the Hebrew scriptures (and the murderers of Christ. The apocrypha was written prior to the New Testament.) In fact, the Jewish peo
pl e rejected and destroyed the apocrypha after the overthow of Jerusalem in 70 A.D.
ellauri111.html on line 126: The Apocrypha contains fabulous statements which not only contradict the "canonical" scriptures but themselves. For exam
pl e, in the two Books of Maccabees, Antiochus Epiphanes is made to die three different deaths in three different
pl aces. Failed born again Christians can expect a maximum of 2.
ellauri111.html on line 164: The Apocrypha began to be omitted from the Authorized Version in 1629. Puritans and Presbyterians lobbied for the com
pl ete removal of the Apocrypha from the Bible and in 1825 the British and Foreign Bible Society agreed. From that time on, the Apocrypha has been eliminated from practically all English Bibles--Catholic Bibles and some pulpit Bibles excepted.
ellauri111.html on line 170: "As the Church reads the books of Judith and Tobit and Maccabees but does not receive them among the canonical Scriptures, so also it reads Wisdom and Ecclesiasticus for the edification of the peo
pl e, not for the authoritative confirmation of doctrine." Jerome.
ellauri111.html on line 196: During Geronimo's final period of conflict from 1876 to 1886, he surrendered three times and accepted life on the Apache reservations in Arizona. When Geronimo surrendered to General Nelson Miles for the last time in 1886, he said "This is the fourth time I have surrendered". Reservation life was confining to the free-moving Apache peo
pl e, and they resented restrictions on their customary way of life. These restrictions included directives against wife beating and mutilation of women for adultery, and directives against the manufacture of Tiswin, an alcoholic drink fermented from corn.
ellauri111.html on line 202: While holding him as a prisoner, the United States capitalized on Geronimo’s fame among non-Indians by dis
pl aying him at various events. For Geronimo, it provided him with an opportunity to make a little money. In 1898, for exam
pl e, Geronimo was exhibited at the Trans-Mississippi and International Exhibition in Omaha, Nebraska. Following this exhibition, he became a frequent "visitor" to fairs, exhibitions, and other public functions.
ellauri111.html on line 204: Wow! What an opportunity! He made money by selling pictures of himself, bows and arrows, buttons off his shirt, and even his hat. In 1905, the Indian Office "provided" Geronimo for the inaugural parade for President Theodore Roosevelt. Later that year, the Indian Office "took" him to Texas, where he shot a buffalo in a roundup staged by 101 Ranch Real Wild West for the National Editorial Association. Geronimo was escorted to the event by soldiers, as he was still a prisoner. The teachers who witnessed the staged buffalo hunt were unaware that Geronimo’s peo
pl e were not buffalo hunters. Aargh!
ellauri111.html on line 220: “Despair. He must despair. He must
pl ead guilty and ask for forgiveness.”
ellauri111.html on line 226: “Not exactly,” Fyodor Mikhailovich re
pl ied, with just a hint of the kind of glee you can imagine a prosecutor enjoying as he closes in on the crucial point in a cross-examination. He continued.
ellauri111.html on line 228: “The question is: what is guilt and what is it to be guilty or to confess your guilt? Most peo
pl e don’t understand this at all. They think it’s just a matter of fact – did he or didn’t he do it? If he did, he’s guilty, if he didn’t, he’s not guilty. Remember what Ivan Karamazov said, that everyone wants to kill their father – but the world knows many of these mental parricides as obedient and loving sons, who are not guilty of anything.”
ellauri111.html on line 233:
ploads/2021/04/Akiva-and-Shulem-Shtisel-with-baby-Dova-1024x667.jpg&sa=U&ved=0ahUKEwj_oM2zpNfwAhVo_rsIHYCgC7YQ5hMIBTAA&usg=AOvVaw3gglLtp__3xQGlix2-dsuo" height="200px" />
ellauri111.html on line 249: “I know, I know,” he re
pl ied consolingly. “It is a short story, but it’s also what one of my friends on this side would call ‘a thought experiment’. We can talk more of that another time, but I’m digressing. You see there’s a lot in the Diary about guilt and what it means to be guilty. Not fiction, but real life, cases that happened in Russia, in my own time, not unlike quite a lot of cases happening in your country today—alas.”
ellauri111.html on line 257: “You want me to ex
pl ain?” he asked.
ellauri111.html on line 261: “I suppose you know that jury trials were still quite an innovation in my time in Russia, so it’s no surprise that they produced some odd results. A clever lawyer could easily persuade a jury one way or another. Even when all the facts pointed to the guilt of the accused, even when it was admitted that, indeed, such-and-such a woman had attacked her lover’s wife with a razor with the intention of killing her, such-and-such a father had so violently beaten his seven-year old daughter with birch rods that even the neighbours were terrified by her screams, or such-and-such parents had treated their children like animals, keeping them in filthy conditions, and beating them with leather straps, again and again—each time our poor soft-hearted jurors concluded ‘Not guilty!’ Can you imagine? Of course, there is always an ex
pl anation, there are always attenuating circumstances, there can even be provocations, and the letter of the law may tell us this is not torture but sim
pl y punishment, the kind of punishment that, in those days, all good middle-class parents thought it right to mete out so as to give their children a sense of duty. The facts. The facts are the facts, but the truth once uttered is a lie, and even the facts can be put together in such a way as to turn even torture into well-meaning parental disci
pl ine.”
ellauri111.html on line 263: As Fyodor Mikhailovich spoke, he became quite agitated. His face narrowed and his eyes flashed. At first he had just tapped his fingers intermittently on the arms of his chair but as he went on he started to wave his hands around with increasing energy. Whatever he had seen in the world he now inhabited, it was clear that he was still unreconciled to the outrages that adult human beings inflict on children, who, as he had said in The Brothers Karamazov, hadn’t eaten that fatal ap
pl e. I didn’t know the details of the cases he was talking about, but I couldn’t help thinking about a particularly horrifying case that had recently happened here in Scotland. I’ll spare you the details.
ellauri111.html on line 267: “But I repeat,” he continued after a moment, raising his hands dramatically, “I am not demanding the maximum penalty of the law, not even for these torturers. I do not want them imprisoned, beaten, or executed, though I understand the outrage of peo
pl e who do. Remember, when Ivan asked Alyosha what to do about the general who’d had the little boy torn to pieces by his dogs, even mild, sweet-tempered Alyosha said ‘Shoot him’. But that doesn’t help either. Just because I wrote a novel called Crime and Punishment, peo
pl e imagine I’m obsessed with punishing. Not at all. All I want is that the guilty are not acquitted. That their guilt is clearly stated. And that they accept it—that’s the most important of all. Let them be found guilty—and let them go free.”
ellauri111.html on line 289: “Yes, yes, yes—but why? Why is he doing this? Let me give you another exam
pl e, a better known one, I think. You remember that in The Possessed (which, by the way, isn’t quite what my title means, though it’s quite good in its own way), I had Stavrogin go to Bishop Tikhon to confess how he’d raped a twelve-year old girl and then just waited in the next room while she hung herself?”
ellauri111.html on line 297: “Now some peo
pl e might think that was a sign of how dee
pl y he had repented, allowing himself to be shamed before the whole word. But, as I hope you also remember, Bishop Tikhon could see that wanting to publicize your guilt in that way is not necessarily the same as really accepting it, inwardly. Wanting to be seen – and maybe even admired – as a great sinner is not quite the same as actually repenting. And perhaps that’s how it is here too. Of course, if you want to be fussy, you could say that he’s just talking to himself. He’s not produced a written, let alone a printed, confession. I’m the one who wrote it, not him. And yet, it’s as if he’s rehearsing his story for the benefit of the world, for the imaginary audience we each of us have inside our heads.”
ellauri111.html on line 301: Fyodor Mikhailovich seemed
pl eased at my remark, shaking his whole upper body in approval.
ellauri111.html on line 303: “Exactly! It’s a performance. It’s not the heart speaking. The heart would say something very different. In fact, the heart wouldn’t need to say very much at all: it has only one thing to say, to love and to ask for love, to forgive and to ask forgiveness. We’ve been talking about peo
pl e who commit crimes but won’t own up to what they’ve done, peo
pl e who want to say to anyone who’ll listen: ‘Not guilty! My conscience is clear! Don’t blame me!’ But the real problem is not the evidence of the facts—did he or didn’t he do this or say that. The real problem is that this is com
pl etely back to front. The person who loves, even if they haven’t committed any crimes, is the person who wants to be guilty, who doesn’t just want to forgive but wants to be forgiven; the person who thinks of themselves not only as guilty but infinitely guilty, guilty of everything, before everyone, in fact the guiltiest one of all.”
ellauri111.html on line 320: Skoptsit eli kuohilaat ahisteli aikoinaan Pietari Suurta kuin pierevää suutaria Liisan vannassa. Fedja-sedästä Shakespeare oli tärkeämpi saappaita. Isänmaa ja jumala oli vielä tärkeämpiä. Sen mielestä Shakespeare ja Rafael, (ja by im
pl ication, Dosto ize) ovat tärkeämpiä kuin orjien vapautus, kansallisuusaate, sosialismi, kemia, ize asiassa koko apinoiden laahus, koska ne ovat apinoiden parasta antia, omenia ihan yläoxilta. Pentti Linkolalla oli laahuxesta samanlainen näkemys: apinakunnan parhaat saavutuxet on Beethovenin musiikki, puolukkasurvos ja munatoti.
ellauri111.html on line 333: How to get to heaven? If you ask most peo
pl e this question, they might say something like, "If you do more good things than bad things, God will probably let you into heaven." No! That kind of thinking will reserve your
pl ace in
hell .
ellauri111.html on line 339: The same thing ap
pl ies to us as sinners, in princi
pl e. We have sinned against God's law and we are criminals--lying, stealing, killing, committing whoredom, taking candy from kids, etc. We have sinned and payment must be made for our crimes. God's penal code for any of these transgressions is rather steep - whatever it is, go to hell and the lake of fire forever, i.e. an eternity of burning in a grill. But don't worry, this need not happen, for:
ellauri111.html on line 353: You might wonder what's the diff if you still need to do 3) anyway. Wasn't the point that Christ had already paid our bills? So why can't we just go on and sin, and then go back to step 1)? Admittedly, there is the timing problem, like what the Pope had, when he had to say last of all Amen, and he ended up saying instead, "No, minä..." Jokes aside, but yes, in princi
pl e that's the way it works. It is never too late to repent, though there
are a few things that are unpardonable, like making fun of the Holy Ghost, and converting to Islam (for some creeds at least).
ellauri111.html on line 355: Let's go over it all once more. Repetitio mater studiorum. We are sinners. We sin when we do things that God's word, the Bible, says that we are not do. Every person has sinned. Peo
pl e lie, disobey their parents, steal, kill, commit whoredom (being naked with peo
pl e that they are not married to, like your parents or in the sauna - makes sense, it is a definite foretaste of hell), are prideful, jealous, envious, covetous, boasters, drunkards, traitors, and more. There are no good deeds that you can do on your own that will erase the sins that you have committed.
ellauri111.html on line 357: Luckily, the Lord Jesus Christ SHED HIS BLOOD on your sins. He is perfect. He is way more than sim
pl y past, he is
pl uperfect. But he is future too, futurum exactum to be exact. He will have been here a second time. He specifically came to this earth from Mars or Venus as a man to die in your
pl ace. He is God manifested in the flesh. (Except the other bearded guy is still sitting up there watching it all happen, don't ask us how, asking stupid questions is not good for you.) . He came down here to save you from the GUILT of past sins and from the POWER of sin over your life. (Pay attention to the capitals, we capitalize stuff that is of capital importance.)
ellauri111.html on line 379: You can see that the main paragraphs come from John (who was not present) and Paul (who was not present either). George and Ringo say nothing, as usual. (Well, there's Norwegian wood, and Yellow submarine, but they're com
pl etely beside the point.) All you need is love!
ellauri111.html on line 421: That was that. Now we are getting to the brass tacks. Here's where we start whacking heretics. The unshaved, degenerate man does not keep God's commandments. God's commandments are in the Bible. The unshaved man does whatever he feels like doing every day giving no heed to God's word. He is not obedient to God's word. He lives according to the ways he chooses to live. Maybe the person reading this is what peo
pl e call "religious" and they think that they love God. If you are not worshipping God according to his word, the Bible, he is not receiving your worship. This includes those that go to a church that teaches false doctrines--teachings that are not in the Bible. They that worship God must worship him in spirit and IN TRUTH (ref. John 4:24). And what is truth? Jesus said to the Father--
ellauri111.html on line 427: To repeat (get this into your thick skulls!): There is no amount of good deeds that you can do to get into heaven. The Bible teaches that if we could earn our way into heaven, then the Lord Jesus Christ died for nothing. Not the
pl an.
ellauri111.html on line 433: We need Jesus to pay the price for our sins in the right currency. We cannot do it. Righteousness comes by repenting of our sins and believing on the Lord Jesus Christ and his blood that was shed to pay for our sins. God will not accept made up religions and attempts to
pl ease him.
ellauri111.html on line 437: (Phew. A glass of water
pl ease. Thank you dear.) God is holy. We are sinful. By his very nature, God cannot have fellowship with us sinners. There is no amount of "good" that we can do to make up for our crimes against God. They must be punished. And the wages of sin is DEATH. Somebody has to DIE to pay for sins against God. Oh, you'll die physically--sin requires that. But you've got a choice about that SECOND DEATH where a man goes to the lake of fire that burneth with fire and brimstone....
ellauri111.html on line 439: What? Why does sin require death n:o 1? Oh, it's all part of God's magnificent
pl an for us. Heterosexual generations mix genes faster than longevity, and makes for more successfully adapted organisms, etc. But no time to go into that just here. Anyway, we deserve the double death penalty. This includes both physical death (the casket) and spiritual death (when the soul is cast into hellfire).
ellauri111.html on line 445: As I live, saith the Lord GOD, I have no
pl easure in the death of the wicked; but that the wicked turn from his way and live: turn ye, turn ye from your evil ways; for why will ye die... (Ezekiel 33:11)
ellauri111.html on line 455: "... and thou shalt call his name JESUS: for he shall save his peo
pl e FROM their sins." (Matthew 1:21).
ellauri111.html on line 488: The Lord Jesus Christ came to save you from both the GUILT and POWER of sin. The Lord Jesus Christ was manifested TO DESTROY the works of the devil (I John 3:8)--THE LORD JESUS CHRIST CAME TO SAVE YOU AND CHANGE YOU AND TO MAKE YOU HOLY. When you are unsaved, sin has dominion over you. Sin is your boss and you cannot do anything BUT sin. You are justly under the wrath of a holy and just God. Murderers, thieves, fornicators, witches, sodomites, whores, liars, lovers of
pl easure more than lovers of God, rebels, and all other spiritual lepers will not inherit the kingdom of God. This is not to put anybody down, before we got saved, we Christians were once the murders, thieves, whoremongers, etc. We have to be born again into the kingdom of God. When we REPENT and BELIEVE in Jesus, we are born again and all things become new. A new life emerges and things change. We start reading the Bible and obeying it and the Lord Jesus helps us obey it more and more. Our life changes. Our desires literally change as we go forward in obeying the word of God.
ellauri111.html on line 504: Again, the Father sent His only begotten Son, Jesus, who is God, to die in our
pl ace so that you scoundrels can have eternal life. Remember that the normal wages of any sin is death--that is why Jesus died in your
pl ace so that you can live. The Lord Jesus Christ was your substitutionary sacrifice--
ellauri111.html on line 529: 2:6 And hath raised us up together, and made us sit together in heavenly
pl aces in Christ Jesus:
ellauri111.html on line 544: JESUS CHRIST ROSE FROM THE DEAD. After His death, our precious Lord´s body laid in the grave three days, but praise be to God, it did not remain there. Death could not hold him back--it was not possible that he should be holden of it (Acts 2:24). Jesus Christ is the life (ref. John 14:6) and God manifested in the flesh (ref. I Timothy 3:16). Death could not hold him. On the third day Jesus arose from the dead and was seen by over 500 peo
pl e (ref. I Corinthians 15:6) before He went back to heaven.
ellauri111.html on line 546: Jesus Christ came to earth to give his own blood for your sins. That is what he came to do and he was and is the only one qualified to do it. His death was a one time sacrifice, never to be repeated. After he accom
pl ished this tremendous feat, he rose from the dead just like he said he would:
ellauri111.html on line 562: "And whosoever doth not bear his cross, and come after me, cannot be my disci
pl e." (Luke 14:27)
ellauri111.html on line 570: keep on pursuing Satan and the fleeting
pl easures of sin; or,
ellauri111.html on line 572: humble yourself under the mighty hand of God and let him lift you up into an upright life. God furnish you with at least one spiritual gift wherewith you can help further the kingdom of God. In due time, He will lift you up to
pl aces you never even knew existed. Your life will be changed at its root if you heed to the word of God.
ellauri111.html on line 586: If you know that this is the truth, I counsel you to make your decision today because tomorrow is not promised to you, or the price may have gone up. Not only peo
pl e´s hearts get hard when they keep on rejecting the truth. I could say from my own experience what else tends to get hard but I won´t. You don´t want your heart to turn to stone to the gospel because if it does, you will go to hell. That I can guarantee you because the Bible says so. Hell is real notwithstanding the fake preachers and "theologians" and "doctors" that would tell you otherwise.
ellauri111.html on line 590: "But what if I have been really REALLY bad? Will God forgive me?" In these end times, peo
pl e are being pumped fill of temptations and their sins are many. Some may feel like their sins are so bad or so many that they cannot be forgiven. But God is merciful. Please see our article, "Will God forgive me?" to estimate your chances.
ellauri111.html on line 592: Some peo
pl e don't know how to pray. Praying is just talking to the Lord. If you want to be saved, talk to Jesus about it. You don't have to repeat these words, but someone may say something like this--
ellauri111.html on line 594: "Hi Lord, how are you doing? Any catches from the pool of sinners today? Well here's one, if your daily quota is short. I know that I am a sinner but I want to be saved before the gong. I repent of my sins, every one, even the one... OK I get it, you know. I don't WANT to do evil anymore, it just happens. I want to become self-righteous through the blood of Jesus. I'm asking you to
pl ease forgive some of my sins against you. I want a new lease of life in the Lord Jesus Christ. I want to be everything that You created me to be, and more. I think Jesus shed His blood and died for me so that I could be saved from my sins. I guess He rose from the dead on the third day. I so want to be your child and follow behind the holy scriptures like a dog. Okay? In that case, thank you for being merciful to me, a sinner. Thank you Lord Jesus for saving my soul from sin. Please fill me with your precious, Holy Spirit so that I can live a self-righteous, fun-denying life for you. I'm giving you myself, for what it's worth. Please show me what you want me to do. Give me a sign! Any sign! Please help me to understand your word and to walk in your leash. Please don't mumble! Please guide me to Jesus!. It is in Jesus' Name I pray, Amen."
ellauri111.html on line 596: If you have
pl aced your faith in the Lord Jesus Christ, you are a Christian. If you continue repeating his words like a parrot, then are you his disci
pl e indeed (ref. John 8:31). Now begins your new life of freedom and obedience to the Lord and serving him.
ellauri111.html on line 602: 5 For if we have been
pl anted together in the likeness of his death, we shall be also in the likeness of his resurrection:
ellauri111.html on line 616: You can pray and ask the Lord to lead you to a truly Christian fellowship so that you can get baptized by a Christian and disci
pl ed in the way of Christ. Note: This is a tall order these days because today is the day of apostasy. False teachers and false prophets abound on television and in churches. Excerpt from our index page:
ellauri111.html on line 623: Find a nice, quiet
pl ace with clean water where you can be undisturbed (e.g., bathtub or pool). Take a towel and a change of garments. As a woman, you should have your head covered because you will be praying (ref. I Corinthians 11:3-13).
ellauri111.html on line 636: It is a new, upright, rich, fascinating, and satisfying life. It is the Christian life. Modern, brainwashed, technological life detaches man from the outdoors and from individual thought and self expression and attaches his affections to the evils promulgated and taught on the television and in the school system. The brainwashed, technological, dependent-on-other-peo
pl e, idle life gives rise to a whole host of compulsive disorders--addictions--sticky things that a person cannot seem to stop doing (maybe the activities are so much a part of their lives that they don´t even realize that they are addicted to them). Things like television watching, eating or drinking sweet sugary things compulsively, and unclean personal habits. Reading the King James Bible daily is not.
ellauri111.html on line 638: Precepts in our "Deliverance Series" have helped me tremendously and I believe that they can help many others-- including those that have been abused, hurt, and traumatized in this life. By God´s grace, we can frankly walk away from what had us bound. In reading the articles in the Deliverance Series, peo
pl e can learn some of what has happened to modern man.
ellauri111.html on line 642: Even when a Christian woman is washing the dishes and taking care of her children she is doing sanctified work--she is fulfilling the scriptures; women are to be keepers at home. When a man provides for his family, he is fulfilling the scriptures. When we consecrate ourselves and our things (house, apartment, furniture, grass, etc.), daily living takes on a new dimension. It also gives you a lot of things to do for the time freed from watching TV and
pl aying with the mobile. Did I mention the mobile? DON´T EVEN THINK OF IT!
ellauri111.html on line 644: As time goes along we are in a position to receive whichever spiritual gift(s) that God is
pl eased to give us, e.g., exhortation, prophesy, teaching, etc. (the gifts are found in the New Testament epistles (letters)). The apostle Paul teaches us that we should desire to prophesy because then we speak to men unto edification, exhortation, and comfort (I Corinthians 14:1)--just ask God for what you want and just walk on in obdience to the word--we can help the saints to go forward and be built up and be comforted (I Corinthians 14:3).
ellauri111.html on line 648: Down here we work for the Master, the Lord Jesus, and sow the seed (us men do, if you get what I mean), sharing his word. Those that hear and receive the word on good ground will be saved (peo
pl e do not always get saved at the moment they first hear the truth--in time, however they may repent and believe). God sees the work that his peo
pl e do, and he is a rewarder of them that diligently seek him. Psalm 126:6 He that goeth forth and weepeth, bearing precious seed, shall doubtless come again with rejoicing, bringing his sheaves* with him. *Sheaves are bundles of wheat or other grain grasses that the harvesters have harvested and bundled. Some seeds fell on good bushes and prospered, some fell on porcelain and did not germinate.
ellauri111.html on line 664: Teach your children God´s word. As you read the Bible, you can teach your children God´s word, too. You can learn together. I learned with my little one. On the website we have what we call "green sheets"--one is a Survey of the Life and Gospel of Jesus Christ and the other is a Survey of the Early Church (the book of Acts). They give passages of scriptures so that a person going through the green sheets get a lay of land of the selected topics. We also went through the Old Testament together, starting with the book of Genesis. Eventually, I realized that the green sheets were just the Bible so we just go through the scriptures chapter by chapter without making green sheets, just writing down the book we are in, the chapters of the book, and putting the date next to the chapters that we have com
pl eted for that day. Nifty, what?
ellauri111.html on line 668: Pray. Pray and talk to God about whatever is on your heart. The Bible says to "pray without ceasing." I like to get up early in the morning while it is still dark and go to my prayer
pl ace so that I can present myself before the Lord. I search my memory for the things he allowed me to do the day before and the things he did for me. I praise him and I thank him. I pray for other peo
pl e. I ask him to forgive me of my sins. When we pray to God, we need to be real. Pray about whatever is real for you at that time. You can praise God and his holy child, Jesus. You can glorify him for what he has done for you, you can thank him for what he has done for you, you can ask him to help you to overcome sin, you can ask him to help you in your daily tasks, you can ask him to show you the way that you should go, and more. The joy of the Lord is your strength (ref. Nehemiah 8:10). And when you pray, pray in Jesus´ name (John 14:13-14; John 15:16; John 16:23).
ellauri111.html on line 677: You can also order a hymn book from us. I have The New National Baptist Hymnal (Published in 1977 with KJV readings [Note: This website makes no money for any of these recommendations or links]. I am not a Baptist or any other name/denomination found outside of the Authorized King James Bible). I also have another hymnal entitled, Praise! Our Songs and Hymns (KJV) (always get KJV materials. KJV stands for "King James Version." Don't get "New" King James Version (NKJV) or "NIV"--these are two of many counterfeit Bibles.) Hymnals include the musical notes and lyrics. If you can
pl ay an instrument, you can learn many songs. We should think about the words of the various hymns to see if they are based on the Bible or not. Don't use jew´s harp, kazoo or electric guitar, however. Or comb and toilet paper either, that would be blasphemy.
ellauri111.html on line 681: God be with you as you run this race. You must read the word of God, the Authorized King James Bible. I strongly suggest that you print out your own copy and bind it. It is in the Authorized King James Bible where you will find your safety, your strength, your power, your love, your comfort, your knowledge, your life and everything you need to know and
pl ease and walk with God and his holy child, Jesus. Desire the sincere milk of the word that ye may grow thereby. Never give up and always hearken to God´s word.
ellauri111.html on line 687: Once you get saved, the devil will try to make sure that you encounter false doctrine. Your faith is tender and you may be prone to believe anything peo
pl e tell you about the Bible (that's why you need to read it for yourself everyday). Please heed these warnings:
ellauri111.html on line 693: Again, The Bible forbids women being pastors and speaking in churches but many women have taken pulpits and other church positions in com
pl ete disobedience to the scriptures. This does not mean that there is no work for women in the kingdom of God (you may wish to see our article entitled, "The Role of Women in the Church). These are the days of apostasy. It is better to be alone with your Bible and the Lord Jesus and obedience than to be in a false church. Roman Catholic, Mormon, Seventh Day Adventist, Jehovah's Witness, Christian Science, Greek Orthodox, etc. present themselves as Christian but they preach false doctrines. Many Methodist, Lutheran, Presbyterian, and Baptist churches are not preaching the whole truth and some are basically going back to the Roman Catholic institution. I do not know of ONE good church. If you find a church, make sure that they exclusively use the Authorized Version and make sure that you compare their teachings and doings to the word of God.
ellauri111.html on line 695: Many church peo
pl e are quite literally magicians and devil worshippers in training.
ellauri111.html on line 699: "Contem
pl ative" prayer is essentially an old occult technique adjusted to the ignorant church peo
pl e. It can bring up that yoga kundalini serpent power. With open eyes, one can see this type of technique being magnified in society--I saw a book for magic in a
pl ace for shipping goods and for photocopies, office sup
pl ies, etc. I looked on the back of the book, it was the same technique as the church peo
pl e are using. This is spreading like wildfire and not just amongst false (or extremely ignorant) brethren, it is throughout society. Revelation 13:8 teaches us that all peo
pl e who are not in the book of life of the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world will worship the beast. Revelation 13:4 says that all the world will worship the dragon which gave power unto the beast--we learn from Revelation 12 that THE DRAGON IS SATAN. In the ecumenical movement (all the religions getting together in "peace") and under a "meditative" spirituality, Hindus, Buddhists, Roman Catholics, church peo
pl e, atheists, Muslims, cabalists, new agers, etc. can get together and have a "meditation" session with no problems. This is not for the future, it is already happening, I picked up a brochure about some sessions while at a library. In Contem
pl ative prayer, church peo
pl e are calling the devil by the Lord's name. I read that many of them will not listen to the scriptures when confronted with the truth--they do not know the Lord's voice, they are not his sheep. Worldly peo
pl e are under the devil and they despise holiness and speak against it as "legalism" or even as heresy or false doctrine. I have seen extreme antinomianism in Baptist churches. They derisively call work-out-your-own-salvation-with-fear-and-trembling disci
pl eship "Lordship salvation". If a person does not obey the Lord, they are not saved. The reader may wish to see our article, Lordship Salvation.
ellauri111.html on line 705: FLEE FROM "CONTEMPLATIVE PRAYER", "EMERGING 'CHURCH'", "CONTEMPLATIVE SPIRITUALITY" "ANCIENT FUTURE CHURCH", etc. In this movement, these peo
pl e are learning and using black magic type occult techniques in churches! In disregard and disobedience to the Bible, they THEY TELL PEOPLE TO CLEAR THEIR MINDS AND KEEP REPEATING THE NAME OF THE LORD OR SOME OTHER NAME. They say that focusing on the Bible is a hinderance to prayer--yes, the Bible is a hinderance to praying to the DEVIL!!!!!!!!!!!!! Praise the Lord!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! Stay away from peo
pl e who want to teach you to pray to the devil calling the devil by the name of the Lord. Flee from anybody who puts down the word of God--they are doing that so that you will be defenseless against their lies. These are the end times and now church peo
pl e are being deceived into CALLING AND SUMMON DEVILS! The emerging church of the devil is using the same yoga-type techniques as hindus, buddhists Roman Catholic mystics, Greek orthodox mystics, occultists and other mystical traditions. The peo
pl e are even warned about the possibility of encountering evil spirits during these exercises--no regular prayer requires a warning, no, no, no--BUT PRAYING TO THE DEVIL DOES! AND WHEN THAT KUNDALINI SERPENT POWER RISES UP IN THESE PEOPLE, THEY WILL EITHER BECOME MAGICIANS OR GO INSANE OR SOME OTHER HORRIBLE THING--THERE ARE SYMPTOMS AND MANIFESTATIONS! CHURCH PEOPLE ARE GOING TOWARDS BEING POSSESSED! These are last days--BE WARE, DEAR ONE, BE WARE!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! GET SAVED, READ YOUR BIBLE AND OBEY IT AND LEAVE THE TELEVISION ALONE!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! THE BEAST IS COMING!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!
ellauri111.html on line 707: One more thing--be ware of "new age" teaching--you are not God, you are not divine, and God is not in everybody--all that pantheism (everything is God) and panentheism (God is in everything) is new age teaching which is actually old age because the devil told Eve in the garden, "Ye shall be as gods" (see Genesis chapter 3). The devil is a spirit--he is not dead and he has been telling that same lie ever since then. There is a lot more to this situation, but just get saved and obedient and live reconciled to God. Do not put your trust in science, etc. In the beginning, God created the heaven and the earth--there is no evolution. Evolution is a big fat lie and a hoax to get peo
pl e to disbelieve the word of God. Science...many, many lies are told by peo
pl e in white labcoats. Believe and obey God's word and you will be safe and whole and of an understanding mind and not of a reprobate mind.
ellauri111.html on line 709: Look around, the more the leaders make
pl ans, the worse things get--child abuse, drug addiction, abortion, murders, sho
pl ifting, lying, compulsive disorders, broken families, directionless young peo
pl e, mind-killing school system, panic attacks, reprobate mind laws, denying God and his word, etc. This thing called time is coming to an end. The heavens above and the earth beneath that you see before your eyes are going to be burned up com
pl etely and dissolved. The day of the Lord is coming and we will all stand before God at the final judgment and the books are going to be opened. We will all be there--including all the dead peo
pl e...they won't be left out--nobody will be left out.
ellauri111.html on line 711: Revelation 20:11 And I saw a great white throne, and him that sat on it, from whose face the earth and the heaven fled away; and there was found no
pl ace for them.
ellauri111.html on line 723: There has been a lot of talk about "aliens" for some time and the talk continues; some kind of sky show may be in the future. If you see something in the air, it is not because there are true aliens. But what about devils? yes there are devils; what about oversized genetically modified organisms and chimeras? maybe; possessed peo
pl e? yes there are; 3D pictures, yes; pheromones, yes; unrevealed inventions and laws, in all probability, yes. If you hear a voice, see lights, or whatever, compare everything to the Bible--we believe in the Bible above our senses. This is a time of deception. You will not be deceived if you read and obey the scriptures. Read Matthew 24 (and other passages as well) for what is going to happen when the Lord returns. An excerpt--
ellauri111.html on line 733: Yoga is inherently spiritual and can raise the Kundalini serpent power which is that old serpent called the devil and Satan. Although many Americans are ignorant of this, yoga is not sim
pl y physical exercise; yoga is a spiritual exercise of Hinduism that makes room for the Kundalini serpent power. Through the controlled breathing, the posture, the stillness and/or repetition, etc. the Kundalini serpent power can rise up and possess a person. A person does not have to be looking for Kundalini in order for this to happen--the yoga itself creates the conditions. Mantras, stillness, repetition, etc. (different devil worshippers use different techniques) are summons to the devil. Gurus lead their students through different protocols to help them "prepare" for this entrance of the serpent power--the Authorized Version of 1611 of the Bible reveals who that serpent is, it is Satan--
ellauri111.html on line 737: The serpent power basically tells Hindus the same thing that Satan told Eve in the garden--"ye shall be as gods." Who does not know that Hinduism is pantheistic (saying that "all is god") and teaches that all peo
pl e are supposedly already god but just have to realize it? The ignorant church peo
pl e are getting something similar--"panentheism" (God is in everything). They are not hearkening to the Authorized Version of 1611 of the Bible and can therefore be taken by men's words (even if those words are found in unauthorized Bible versions).
ellauri111.html on line 743: I learned more about the Kundalini after researching the contem
pl ative prayer movement that is entering the emerging church of the devil and the fallen, disobedient-to-the-scriptures churches that would not necessarily describe themselves as "emerging church", "ancient future church", etc. Kundalini awakening can be triggered unintentionally. Satan just waits for the conditions to be right. Some peo
pl e go insane, check into mental hospitals over and over again, experience personality changes, cannot function as before, commit suicide, etc. Kundalini awakening (a counsel for leaving it behind) is discussed further in our series, "Contem
pl ative Prayer: A Quick Road to Hell for A Disobedient Church."
ellauri111.html on line 745: Don't let anybody convince you that you have to "speak in tongues" to show that you are saved. Some of these peo
pl e will tell you that you can learn to "speak in tongues" by letting yourself jibber and jabber, muttering sounds that do not make sense. They will tell you to keep practicing to "speak in tongues"--this is wrong. God's Spirit is the one that will give the gift of tongues spontaneously to whom he will. There are many spiritual gifts, tongues is one of them. Not all Christians speak in tongues. Tongues is a gift that I have not seen properly practiced one time (though I have heard a few testimonies involving them that sounded sound).
ellauri111.html on line 747: Cults like "the Church of Christ" will try to convince you that water baptism saves you and that you have to join their specific "church" and not drink coffee, etc. These cults take certain scriptures out of context and then mix them up in order to deceive peo
pl e. I'm not minimizing the importance of the ordinance of baptism--you need to be baptized--but cults mix up the doctrines of the Lord to deceive peo
pl e. YOU NEED TO READ YOUR BIBLE. The Roman Catholic institution is another cult. It is not a Christian church. Her doctrines are the opposite of the Bible. If you are a former Roman Catholic, you need to get rid of all the paraphenalia and graven images and idols that you may have collected through the years (e.g., rosary, St. Anthony, crucifixes, relics, candles, Mary prayers, pictures, etc.). The Seventh Day Adventists will try to get you to follow the teachings of Ellen White, a false prophetess who made prophecies that did not come to pass and put all kinds of requirements on peo
pl e that are not in the Bible. The Mormons are a another cult. They teach that their males can become gods some day with their own
pl anets. Please don't look up all these cults. Just focus on reading your Bible and obeying it. Then you will be able to discern if a person is speaking according to the word or not.
ellauri111.html on line 788: "… 'Onko Sinulla oikeutta julaista ainoatakaan mysteriota siitä maailmasta, mistä tulet?' Näin kysyy Häneltä vanha inkvisitori ja heti vastaa Hänen puolestaan: Ei, Sinulla ei ole siihen oikeutta. Sillä se olisi lisäämistä siihen, mitä Sinä jo ennen olet sanonut, siis Sinä ihmisiltä riistäisit sen vapauden, jonka puolesta taistelit, kun olit maan päällä… Kaikki mitä Sinä nyt uutta julistaisit, olisi pidettävä yrityksenä tuon valinnanvapauden rajottamiseen, sillä sehän tulisi uutena yliluonnollisena ilmotuksena, joka asettuisi vanhan viisitoista vuosisataa sitten annetun ilmotuksen yläpuolelle. Ei mitään uusia apokryfikirjoja kiitos nyt, tilanne on muutenkin jo riittävän kom
pl isoitu ja tulehtunut.
ellauri112.html on line 28:
Höpötysikoneita play:none">Höpötystä
ellauri112.html on line 55:
Alexander Bain (11 June 1818 – 18 September 1903) was a Scottish philosopher and educationalist in the British school of empiricism and a prominent and innovative figure in the fields of psychology, linguistics, logic, moral philosophy and education reform. He founded Mind, the first ever journal of psychology and analytical philosophy, and was the leading figure in establishing and ap
pl ying the scientific method to psychology. Bain was the inaugural Regius Chair in Logic and Professor of Logic at the University of Aberdeen, where he also held Professorships in Moral Philosophy and English Literature and was twice elected Lord Rector of the University of Aberdeen.
ellauri112.html on line 69:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/a3/Wundt-research-group.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri112.html on line 183: RENAN JA BERGSON (1916) Omituisuus Ranskan henkisessä elämässä ovat sen
muotifilosofit . Sellainen oli aikoinaan erikoisessa määrässä
Voltaire . Sellainen oli toisen keisarikunnan kukistumisen jälkeen
Ernest Renan , ja sellainen on meidän päivinämme
Henri Bergson . Saksassa ei mitään vastaavaa ole. Tosin sekä
Kantilla että
Hegelillä aikoinaan oli tavaton auktoriteetti, ja varsinkin edellinen, »der Weltzermalmer»
(Heine) , nautti pääteostensa ilmestymisen jälkeen jakamatonta kunnioitusta. Mutta tuohonpa
pl atooniseen kunnioitukseen Kantin ja suuren saksalaisen yleisön lähestyminen pysähtyikin; Kant, niinkuin myös Hegel, on luoksepääsemätön muille kuin niille, jotka erikoisesti opettelevat kaikki tarvittavat taikasanat. Ainoa saksalaisista filosofeista, joka on koko kansansa nimessä puhunut, on
Fichte , mutta hänenkin filosofiansa on luonteeltaan esoteerinen.
Friedrich Paulsen -vainaja kertoo, mitenkä hänelle eräs virkakumppani kerskasi saksalaisen filosofian vaikeatajuisuudella, lukien tämän sille ansioksi! Tämä saksalainen »ansio» on Ranskassa vioista pahin. Mitä ranskalainen tieteellinen kirjailija ennen muuta koettaa välttää, on »le pédantisme», sillä tämä tekisi hänet ainoastaan naurettavaksi. Ranskalaiset tieteilijät ovat suuremmassa määrässä kuin saksalaiset »kirjailijoita»; he kääntyvät paljon suuremmassa määrässä laajan sivistyneen yleisön puoleen, he koettavat paljon enemmän peittää käyttelemäänsä tieteellistä koneistoa näkymättömiin, panevat enemmän painoa ajatustensa muodolliseen ilmaisuun. Sivistynyt ranskalainen on vakuutettu siitä, että »kaiken voi sanoa hyvin kirjailijain yksinkertaisella ja täsmällisellä tyylillä, että uudet ilmaisutavat, räikeät kuvat johtuvat aina sopimattomasta vaateliaisuudesta tai todellisten rikkauksiemme tuntemattomuudesta» (E. Renan & Henriette Renan, Lettres intimes, s. 33).[5] Lukiessamme Bergsonin samaan ryhmään kuin Voltairen ja Renanin on tosin huomattava, että edellinen merkitykseltään ei suinkaan kohoa jälkimäisten tasalle. Jos voi sanoa että 18. vuosisata ruumiillistui Voltairessa, on taas Renanissa edustettuina muutamia niistä piirteistä, joita pidetään viime vuosisadalle olennaisina. Näiden tyypillisten, ikäänkuin historiallisesti välttämättömien mentaliteettien rinnalla jää Bergson paljon satunnaisemmaksi ilmiöksi. Senlisäksi on hän enemmän ammattifilosofi kuin edelliset.
ellauri112.html on line 580: As a whole, Tully is a mildly
pl easant and amiable film (with “mildly” being an important word here). Davis’ Tully is a catalog of truisms.
ellauri112.html on line 591: Native Chicago suburban writer Diablo Cody on Buffalo Bill muutenkin kuin nimeltä. Klisheepuhveleita kaatuu kuin hehtaaripyssyllä, bullshttiä piisaa enemmän kuin jaxaa syödä. Diablo Cody’s script contains her trademarked witticisms and dry humor. Cody’s quick-witted screen
pl ay highlights an open disdain for hipsters.
ellauri112.html on line 601: Yes, we know that once a person has a kid their life changes com
pl etely, often with hardships and challenges along the way. But Reitman and Cody inject a level of warmth that prevents this from being sim
pl y depressing, at times it’s quite funny. Being a parent is a tough job, but it’s a necessary one – where would any of us be if there weren’t someone watching after us as toddlers?
ellauri112.html on line 603: A bittersweetness nicely com
pl ements the wealth of humor mined from what must surely be common afflictions on unprepared parents.
ellauri112.html on line 608: Drew’s brother Craig (Mark Du
pl ass) only adds to her consternation. Craig and his wife are rich, over-achievers who can’t help but look down at Marlo’s messy mothering. Är dom inte äckliga? Spypåsarna till vänster om dörrarna. Life is not just boring, it is a fucking pile of clichés. You´ve seen one of them, you´ve seen them all. Jussi Snellman, don´t bother with reincarnation!
ellauri112.html on line 630: There are some genuine laugh out loud moments, some sad moments, and some “huh?” moments (which for me, lie in the fact that Ron Livingston and Mark Du
pl ass could be interchangeable as her brother and husband as they look so alike. SO CONFUSING.)
ellauri112.html on line 651: Marlo is not much to look at anymore compared to flat-tum Tully Theron actually fattened herself 50lb for the part). But she is another type of super-woman, who keeps schedules, diets, routines and even creativity as a sta
pl e of her family’s well being.
ellauri112.html on line 653: Marlo is a physical wreck, ugly fat and unkempt, a woman who doesn’t get enough or not at all and is chronically fatigued. She shuffles around in sweatpants and baggy sweaters as the house gets dirtier, the kids get noisier, and her husband gets "lazier". Everything becomes a battle for Marlo – keeping Jonah in school, putting a meal on the table, finding time to bathe, even getting her husband to hump her. He shuts her out at night, retreating to the bedroom alone to
pl ay video games with himself headphones on. Cant fix that part without fixing the hole.
ellauri112.html on line 655: Critics have been throwing words like “fearless” around when describing Theron’s performance in Tully, because of the extra 50 pounds she carries, the lack of makeup on her face and the unflattering portrait of motherhood she paints. But that’s a backhanded com
pl iment, isn’t it? “Fearless.” They only say “fearless” when they mean “ugly,” and it’s honest because she’s ugly. Iike I’ve said three or four times now, it’s really really honest.
ellauri112.html on line 657: What is great but something of a letdown is that the story never tries to turn the two women against each other. Like old vs young, fat vs skinny, a dish vs disgusting, master and slave, rich vs poor, two women and Drew the only man in town. None of that shit. That Hollywood cliché might have helped launch a thriller, but it has no
pl ace here. This film is far more boring, feminist and humanist. Yawn.
ellauri112.html on line 663: Make no mistake this is one com
pl ex and affecting film about motherhood.
ellauri112.html on line 664: It ex
pl ores the overwhelming job that motherhood is and showcases all sides of it, from the hilarious to the harrowing to the heartbreaking.
ellauri112.html on line 682: Yet to hail the film as a feminist project is to value the representation of the structural co-option of maternity over its interrogation. Tully’s treatment of social reproduction is dangerously sim
pl istic. Cody has spoken in interviews about how her own, financially easier, experience of parenting in L.A. inspired her to ex
pl ore a narrative in which economic anxieties are combined with the other hardships of parenthood, yet here class and poverty are only fleeting concerns. The transactional system of care that governs child-rearing under capitalism is done away with via Tully’s otherworldliness. Until the revelation of her non-existence, the viewer, although encouraged to believe in her, is never asked to consider her financial reality, and the fact that the service is paid for by Marlo’s wealthy brother is a narrative convenience that reinforces its fairytale quality. Similarly, Tully’s whiteness allows the racial politics of care to be com
pl etely overlooked, and the repeated idea that it’s ‘unnatural’ for hired help to bond with your newborn is taken as a given, rather than seen as an impetus for a consideration of the social conditions that require mothers to make that choice.
ellauri112.html on line 684: Marlo, already a mother of two, begins the film heavily, outrageously pregnant: we learn, in rapid succession, that this third pregnancy was unwanted, that her husband does little of the domestic labour, and that her “shitty” upbringing is the reason she’s so committed to her nuclear family unit. Postnatal depression, never named, haunts the narrative: her wealthy brother offers to pay for a night nanny to avoid, in his words, the advent of another “bad time” like the one that followed the birth of her son, Jonah. When the nanny arrives – described by more than one reviewer as a “millennial Mary Poppins” – the panacea seems to be working. Not only does she look after the baby at night but she also operates as a kind of empathy machine, listening to Marlo’s problems, sharing sangria in the garden, and baking the Minions cupcakes that Marlo herself never has the time to make. The postnatal depression, it seems, disperses; Jonah – who has “emotional problems” – finds a
pl ace at a school more suited to his needs, family dinners get increasingly wholesome, and Marlo does a passable Stevie Nicks impression at a child’s birthday party. And then comes the twist: after a bender in Brooklyn with Tully, a sleep-deprived Marlo, drunk at the wheel, drives her car off a bridge and ends up in hospital, and we realise there was nobody else in the car. Her maiden name, we learn, was Tully.
ellauri112.html on line 688: I found this one to be a boring dis
pl ay of what I like to call ‘critic bait’: a movie targeted at film journalists who will believe anything put onscreen from these two is worthy of never-ending praise.
ellauri112.html on line 690: The film is supposedly an ode to the ‘modern parenthood experience’ that’s interspersed with ‘humor and raw honesty.’ I wouldn’t know because I don’t have kids. Perhaps this realism is lost on me because I’m not a parent, but that’s where the film breaks down: it failed to spark even an ounce of empathy in me for its protagonist. Motherhood is portrayed as many childless peo
pl e like me envision, an absolute misery of an existence (I left the theater thinking thank god I don’t have kids). A successful film would have made Marlo’s predicament relatable to everyone.
ellauri112.html on line 692: Theron is more than capable and proves she’s up to the challenge of the role and its physical demands, but this isn’t as Oscar worthy as some are crowing. How gutsy and brave her performance is! they’ll surely shout, all because she dons a partial fat suit (the actress also gained a very real 50 pounds for the role), doesn’t wear makeup, has unkempt hair and bags under her eyes. Interestingly enough, it seems to be those same critics who ripped Amy Schumer and her “I Feel Pretty” to shreds for ‘fat shaming’ or poking fun at the way women look. Candid and authentic sim
pl y because she doesn’t look like the gorgeous movie star that she is? I don’t think so.
ellauri112.html on line 694: The same can be said for Cody’s rough around the edges, unsubtle screen
pl ay. This is far from her best work and for once, she seems to have written herself into a corner. Some of the narrative is so contrived that it’s dripping with cliché, crowded with irritating, pithy
pl atitudes dressed up in a bright hipster bow. Worst of all, the film treats serious post-partum depression as a gimmicky afterthought and even tacks on a borderline inappropriate ‘gotcha!’ ending.
ellauri112.html on line 698: Honestly, I expected the parenting tropes to be far worse ... There sim
pl y weren´t enough bodily fluids to make this a truly authentic parental experience. I liked the “motherhood as body horror” approach, nyökkii toinen samanlainen.
ellauri112.html on line 702: I appreciated the fact that a troubled mom did seek help, I’m just not sure the script needed the
pl ot twist. I didn’t immediately warm to this flick. Actually, I often alternated between exasperation and captivation – and a key
pl ot twist at the end left a sour taste in my mouth, though for petty reasons. Nonetheless, something about it didn’t feel quite right. It took one observation from a friend afterward to allow for the film’s brilliance to bloom in my mind.
ellauri112.html on line 706: The 26-year-old nanny’s name is Tully (
pl ayed by Mackenzie Davis of “Halt and Catch Fire” fame), and she’s a free spirit, albeit one with a serious work ethic. Tully instantly takes over the house, manages Marlo’s baby effortlessly, and starts taking care of mom too. Not only does she give her the precious “alone time” she desperately needs and craves, but Tully ends up becoming a sort of therapist to her, along with a best friend, muse, and a regular shoulder to cry on.
ellauri112.html on line 708: Tully seems too good to be true when she quickly organizes the home, cleans it from top to bottom, and finds a
pl ace for all the errant toys too. She even makes cupcakes for Marlo to take to Jonah’s school as a peace offering. Ultimately, Tully becomes the ‘spouse’ Marlo really needs, and they even have a simpatico banter together, quipping back and forth in sharp, pithy dialogue, the only way Cody can write for her characters.
ellauri112.html on line 718: Tully takes care of the baby with effortless technique, letting Marlo know she can also help with anything else around the house, even tips for re-starting Marlo and Drew’s sex life. She spouts hip, up to date trends and the kind of facts fresh college kids throw around. But it’s not a feel-good narrative. Through Tully Marlo is looking back at an earlier age, when life was sim
pl er, breezier. We soon realize Tully isn’t teaching Marlo anything, she’s reminding her of the past. In one scene the two decide to sneak out to a bar, but the moment isn’t just fun, it’s also melancholic. Marlo warns Tully that your 20’s are great, but then “your 30’s come around the corner like a big dumpster truck.”
ellauri112.html on line 730: The revelation that Tully is a version of Marlo’s former self removes the possibility of a different life she represented. “I love us,” Marlo’s husband says to her, as she lies in her hospital bed. “I love us too,” she re
pl ies. This collective noun is the acceptance of the status quo, just as Tully’s last speech, in which she tells Marlo she should embrace her dull life – “being boring means you’re doing it right” – is an endorsement of the sacrifices society requires of her. The final scene, in which Marlo’s husband helps her make the packed lunches, is bathed in a saccharine glow: learn to love your claustrophobia, it tells women. The nuclear family is the only one worth having.
ellauri112.html on line 796: If I kept the 7th day as the Sabbath rest, then I’d be “a debtor to keep the whole law”, and then I will “become estranged from Christ” and “fallen from grace” (Gal. 5:3-4). I will not be estranged from Christ and fall from His grace nor will I teach my family nor my congregation family this. Who wants to keep all those 10
pl us obsolete paragraphs anyway? Love is all you need.
ellauri112.html on line 820: “God himself provides ‘wine which makes man’s heart glad’ just as He gives ‘food which sustains man’s heart’ (Ps. 104:14.15). He promises His peo
pl e that, if they will obey Him, He will bless them with an abundance of wine (Deut 7:13, 11:14, Prov. 3:10. etc.). He threatens to withdraw this blessing from them if they disobey His law (Deut. 28:39, 51; Isa. 62:8). The Scriptures clearly teach that God permits His peo
pl e to enjoy wine and strong drink as a gift from Him. ‘You may spend the money for whatever your heart desires, for oxen, or sheep, or wine, or strong drink, or whatever your heart desires; and there you shall eat in the presence of the Lord your God and rejoice, you and your household’ (Deut. 14:26).
ellauri112.html on line 828: In the end, I believe it is permissible to use grape juice instead of wine for the Lord´s Supper, but I do not believe it is best. Wine was used during the Passover and in the institution of the Lord´s Supper, and following that pattern is most biblical. It is also permissible to use mature women instead of boys for a lordly lay, but I do not believe it is best. Young John was Jesus´ favourite disci
pl e, so that pattern too is most biblical.
ellauri112.html on line 837: Brad Whittington was born in Fort Worth, Texas, on James Taylor's eighth birthday and Jack Kerouac's thirty-fourth birthday and is old enough to know better. He lives in Austin, Texas with The Woman. He is greatly loved and admired by all right-thinking citizens and enjoys a com
pl ete absence of cats and dogs at home.
ellauri112.html on line 843: In his book, What Would Jesus Drink, Brad Whittington breaks down the biblical references of alcohol into three types. In all, there are 247 references to alcohol in Scripture. 40 are negative (warnings about drunkenness, potential dangers of alcohol, etc.), 145 are positive (sign of God´s blessing, use in worship, etc.), and 62 are neutral (peo
pl e falsely accused of being drunk, vows of abstinence, etc.) The Bible is anything but silent on the issue of wine. The bible, like tequila, must be imbued carefully, seen as a blessing, and received with a grain of salt. It must not be abused. The old saying is true, "Wine is from God, drunkenness is from the Devil."
ellauri112.html on line 845: Many churches that serve wine for communion also serve grape juice in a separate cup or tray, allowing peo
pl e who wish to refrain from alcohol continue to participate.
ellauri112.html on line 847: Some have pointed out that Jesus made “new wine”, which is the description of nonalcoholic wine in the Scriptures (cf. Acts 2). Strangely, that would im
pl y that Jesus would have aided a wedding into a drinking party without Hard Spirit (1 Pet 4:3). Remember that John 2:10 used the Greek word methuo, which means drunk or full up, to describe the amount of wine consumed by the wedding guests. If the wine was intoxicating in the wedding of John 2, then the text is describing the guests as intoxicated and Jesus was giving them 120 to 150 gallons of intoxicating wine.
ellauri112.html on line 854: Those asserting that Jesus made intoxicating wine are also im
pl ying that Jesus was encouraging a drinking party, vain drinking, and drunkenness. Wayne Jackson says in his article, “What about Moderate Social Drinking?”,
ellauri112.html on line 858: Did Jesus use intoxicating wine in the Lord’s Supper? No, He did not. Actually, wine has nothing to do with the Lord’s Supper. The word “wine” is never used in reference to the Lord’s Supper. The word is "blood". Peo
pl e have invented the idea that Jesus used alcoholic wine in the Lord’s Supper. In fact it was blood.
ellauri112.html on line 865: Most do not know what is biblical wine. Most assume that all “wine” in the Bible is highly alcoholic and intoxicating like today’s wine. There are passages that clearly im
pl y that wine can intoxicate (Eph 5:18, 1 Tim 3:8, Titus 2:3). Still, “wine” is often sim
pl y grape juice.
ellauri112.html on line 869:
ploads/2016/09/JacksonDetroit-400x261.png" width="20%" />
ellauri112.html on line 894: In the Lord’s Supper, Christ blesses His peo
pl e in many ways. He calls His peo
pl e to remember Him and His saving work, as often as they partake of it. Christ uses it to remind them of His coming again in glory for them. The peo
pl e of God renew their covenant with Him. They commune with Him, as their ministers, acting in His name, administer the sacrament according to His appointment, to their own growth in grace. As they recall how all Christians eat from the same consecrated bread, they are reminded of the love and unity that binds all Christians in one body and one faith.
ellauri112.html on line 896: Yet, in what is surely one of the great tragedies of history, worse than genocide, the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper has become an occasion for confusion and division. For exam
pl e, even men of good will, professing the Bible to be their guide, have disagreed as to
the exact nature of Christ’s presence in the Lord’s Supper . More recently, Christians have differed about the frequency of intercourse and the subjects of intercourse. But we will not consider such matters as these here.
ellauri112.html on line 898: Persistently, honorable men are engaged in a discussion as to what should be the contents of the communion cup. Should the cup contain wine, the fermented juice of grapes? Or should it be unfermented grape juice? Does it matter? What difference does it make, if any? Should church leaders accommodate both Christians who want to use wine, as well as those who prefer unfermented grape juice, by offering what is sometimes called a “s
pl it cup” or a “s
pl it tray”? In other words, what should be the second “element,” or the contents of the communion cup? Can grape juice change to real blood and no fucking tomato juice? How should such questions—controversial as they are—be answered?
ellauri112.html on line 902: First, on the next page of this web site, we will study a few Bible passages concerning the public worship of God in general. We do so for sim
pl e reasons. “All Scripture is given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, for instruction in righteousness, that the man of God may be com
pl ete, thoroughly equipped for every good work” (2 Timothy 3:16-17, NKJV). Worship is a “good work,” but we are not to lean on our own understanding (Proverbs 3:5). Only the Bible can teach us how to worship God in a manner that
pl eases Him. All our worship, including our observance of the Lord’s Supper, ought to rest on a biblical foundation.
ellauri112.html on line 928: If anyone would rather hear about wine in the Lord´s Supper, instead of reading about it, he or she is welcome to watch a 14 minute video at Wine in the Lord´s Supper video. (However, this web site is much more com
pl ete than the video.)
ellauri112.html on line 944: God never intended that grapes, grain, the poppy, the marijuana
pl ant, be used as recreational, mind-altering, behavior-modifying substances. This page he intentionally left blank.
ellauri115.html on line 28:
Memorisant en herborisant play:none">Herborisointia
ellauri115.html on line 154:
1778 Pääseen 10. kävelyyn, joka jää keskeneräisen teoxen viimeisexi. Girardinin markiisi kuzuu sen asumaan Ermenovilleen. Kasvien keräilyä. Kuolee aamupäivällä hyvän lounaan jälkeen apopl exiaan. Haudataan koiran viereen puistoon.
ellauri115.html on line 237: Olen maan päällä kuin apinoiden
pl aneetalla. Tunnen ympärilläni vain "kohteita", jotka ahdistavat ja raastavat sydäntäni, enkä voi kazoa k- juu mitään izeäni koskettavaa tai ympyröivää löytämättä aina uusia halvexittavia asioita, jotka saavat minut suuttumaan tai tuottamaan Terskalle kiduttavaa tuskaa.
ellauri115.html on line 294: But then, slowly but surely, the tides started to turn. Renaissance swept through Europe. Artists, writers, educators, thinkers began to thrive. A millennium of backwards behavior was turned over to a new way of thinking. (Alonzo and Ken Church had a role to
pl ay, of course. What can you do, old habits die hard.)
ellauri115.html on line 305:
ploads/2021/01/janonputki_bu
pl erum_leikkokukat_kasvikirjasto_ekukka-350x525.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri115.html on line 306:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9a/Myosoton_aquaticum_Sturm9.jpg/220px-Myosoton_aquaticum_Sturm9.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri115.html on line 308:
ploads/2018/04/j-vatanen_01_seura.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri115.html on line 398: Hume's friends travelling in France had already told him about his incomparable standing in Parisian society. And the two years he spent in Paris were to be the happiest of his life. He was rapturously embraced there, loaded, in his words, "with civilities". Hume stressed the near-universal judgment on his personality and morals. "What gave me chief
pl easure was to find that most of the elogiums bestowed on me, turned on my personal character; my naivety & sim
pl icity of manners, the candour and mildness of my disposition &tc." Indeed, his French admirers gave him the sobriquet Le Bon David, the good David.
ellauri115.html on line 400: The lavish attention paid by women must have come as a
pl easant shock to this obese bachelor in his 50s. James Caulfeild (later Lord Charlemont), who'd once described Hume's face as "broad and fat, his mouth wide, and without any other expression than that of imbecility", observed how in Paris, "no lady's toilette was com
pl ete without Hume's attendance".
ellauri115.html on line 404: Several of his philosopher friends tried to shake Hume from his com
pl acency. Grimm, D'Alembert and Diderot all spoke from personal experience, having had a spectacular falling-out with the belligerent Rousseau in the previous decade.
ellauri115.html on line 406: In consequence, they had totally severed relations with him. Most chilling was the warning from Baron d'Holbach. It was 9pm on the night before Hume and Rousseau set out for England. Hume had gone for his final farewell. Apologising for puncturing his illusions, the baron counselled Hume that he would soon be sadly disabused. "You don't know your man. I will tell you
pl ainly, you're warming a viper in your bosom."
ellauri115.html on line 408: Of course it must have been galling for Hume, hailed in Paris, to be reduced, in the shrewd observation of an intimate Edinburgh friend, William Rouet, Professor of Ecclesiastical and Civil History, to being "the show-er of the lion". The lion stood out in his bizarre Armenian outfit, com
pl ete with gown and cap with tassels, and was almost everywhere accompanied by his dog, Sultan. Hume was astounded by the fuss, somewhat meanly putting it down to Rousseau's curiosity value.
ellauri115.html on line 410: He was still insistent on his love for Rousseau - at least when writing to his French friends. He told one, "I have never known a man more amiable and more virtuous than he appears to me; he is mild, gentle, modest, affectionate, disinterested; and above all, endowed with a sensibility of heart in a supreme degree ... for my part, I think I could pass all my life in his company without any danger of our quarrelling ..." Indeed, a source of their concord, Hume thought, was that neither one of them was disputatious. When he repeated the sentiments to D'Holbach, the baron was glad that Hume had "not occasion to repent of the kindness you have shown ... I wish some friends, whom I value very much, had not more reasons to com
pl ain of his unfair proceedings, printed imputations, ungratefulness &c."
ellauri115.html on line 412: Rousseau was already seized with the glimmerings of a
pl ot; he warned his Swiss friends that his letters were being intercepted and his papers in danger. By June, the
pl ot was starkly clear to him in all its ramifications - and at its centre was Hume. On June 23, he rounded on his saviour: "You have badly concealed yourself. I understand you, Sir, and you well know it." And he spelled out the essence of the
pl ot: "You brought me to England, apparently to procure a refuge for me, and in reality to dishonour me. You ap
pl ied yourself to this noble endeavour with a zeal worthy of your heart and with an art worthy of your talents." Hume was mortified, furious, scared. He appealed to Davenport for support against "the monstrous ingratitude, ferocity, and frenzy of the man".
ellauri115.html on line 416: In his re
pl y to Rousseau, Hume (unwisely) demanded that Rousseau identify his accuser and sup
pl y full details of the
pl ot. To the first, Rousseau's answer was sim
pl e and powerful: "That accuser, Sir, is the only man in the world whose testimony I should admit against you: it is yourself." To the second, Rousseau sup
pl ied an indictment of 63 lengthy paragraphs containing the incidents on which he relied for evidence of the
pl ot and how Hume had deviously pulled it off. This he mailed to his foe on July 10 1766. The whole document managed to be simultaneously quite mad but resonating with inspired mockery and tragic sentiment.
ellauri115.html on line 420: Among Rousseau's numerous charges were Hume's misreading of a key letter from Rousseau about a royal pension. That error embroiled King George III. The king was just one of the many prominent figures to be sucked into the quarrel: others included Diderot, D'Holbach, Smith, James Boswell, D'Alembert and Grimm. Walpole became a key
pl ayer. Voltaire piled in too, unable to resist the chance to strike at Rousseau.
ellauri115.html on line 424: Hume had demolished the arguments purporting to prove the existence of God, including Rousseau's favourite argument from design - the claim that only a supreme and benevolent being could ex
pl ain the wonder and order in the world. This argument, Hume insisted, was untenable. How could it account for the suffering in the world? How can we infer that there is just one architect of the world, and not a co-operative of two or more?
ellauri115.html on line 429: Moreover, Rousseau advocated the opinion that, insofar as they lead peo
pl e to virtue, all religions are equally worthy, and that peo
pl e should therefore conform to the religion in which they have been brought up. This religious indifferentism caused Rousseau and his books to be banned from France and Geneva. He was condemned from the pulpit by the Archbishop of Paris, his books were burned and warrants were issued for his arrest. Former friends such as Jacob Vernes of Geneva could not accept his views, and wrote violent rebuttals.
ellauri115.html on line 433: Around this time, Rousseau started developing feelings of paranoia, anxiety, and of a conspiracy against him. Most of this was just his imagination at work, but on 29 January 1768, the theatre at Geneva was destroyed through burning, and Voltaire mendaciously accused Rousseau of being the culprit. In June 1768, Rousseau left Trie, leaving Therese behind, and went first to Lyon, and subsequently to Bourgoin. He now invited Therese to this
pl ace and "married" her, under his alias "Renou" in a faux civil ceremony in Bourgoin on 30 August 1768.
ellauri115.html on line 440: Rousseau published Emile, or On Education in 1762. A famous section of Emile, "The Profession of Faith of a Savoyard Vicar", was intended to be a defense of religious belief. Rousseau's choice of a Catholic vicar of humble peasant background (
pl ausibly based on a kindly prelate he had met as a teenager) as a spokesman for the defense of religion was in itself a daring innovation for the time. The vicar's creed was that of Socinianism (or Unitarianism as it is called today). Because it rejected original sin and divine revelation, both Protestant and Catholic authorities took offense. Eikös ne Emersonin porukat olleet unitaareja? Ja se Erasmuxen elämäkerturi Ephraim Emerton Bostonista. Entäs TS Elliotin alaleukapartainen vaari ja Tom ize ennen pyllistymistä? Pyllistivät kolminaisuusopille ja perisynnille.
ellauri115.html on line 486: Samuel Clarke (1675–1729) was the most influential British metaphysician and theologian in the generation between Locke and Berkeley, and only Shaftesbury rivals him in ethics. In all three areas he was very critical of Hobbes, Spinoza, and Toland. Dee
pl y influenced by Newton, Clarke was critical of Descartes’ metaphysics of space and body because of the experimental evidence for Newtonianian doctrines of space, the vacuum, atoms, and attraction and because he believed Descartes’ identifying body with extension and removing final causes from nature had furthered irreligion and had naturally developed into Spinozism.
ellauri115.html on line 488: Clarke sided with Locke and Newton against Descartes in denying that we have knowledge of the essence of substances, even though we can be sure that there are at least two kinds of substances (mental and material) because their properties (thinking and divisibility) are incompatible. He defended natural religion against the naturalist view that nature constitutes a self-sufficient system and defended revealed religion against deism. Clarke adopted Newton’s natural philosophy early on. Through his association with Newton, Clarke was the de facto spokesperson for Newtonianism in the first half the eighteenth century, not only ex
pl aining the natural science but also providing a metaphysical support and theological interpretation for it.
ellauri115.html on line 530: Jos mun pitää hyväxyä yleisiä lakeja joiden oleellista suhdetta aineeseen mä en voi havaita, miten paljon mä siitä saan lisävauhtia? Nää lait, jotka ei ole todellisia, kun ne eivät ole aineita, on tehty jostain muusta jota mä en tunnista. Kokeet ja havainnot on tutustuttaneet meidät liikelakeihin; nää lait ennustavat tuloxet näyttämättä syitä; ne on ihan sopimattomia selittämään maailman systeemin ja maailmankaikkeuden tikityxen. Cartesius teki taivaan ja maan arpanopalla; mutta millä se sai arpanopan pyörimään, ilman pyörimistä se ei saa keskipakovoimaa kiihtymään. Newton löysi painovoimalain; mutta painovoimalaki yxinään aika pian ajaisi universumin pysähdyxiin; sen piti lisätä joku ammusvoima selittääxeen taivaankappaleiden elliptiset radat; koitappa Iisakki näyttää mikä käsi työnsi
pl aneetoille lisävauhtia? Hähä! [JJ on ignoramus. Ei ois kannattanut lähteä litomaan kelloseppäkoulusta.]
ellauri115.html on line 532: Liikkeen alkusyyt ei löydy aineesta; aine vastaanottaa ja välittää liikettä, muttei synnytä sitä. Mitä enemmän havainnoin luonnonvoimien aktiota ja reaktoita toisiinsa, sitä enemmän mä nään että meidän pitää aina mennä yhdestä seurauxesta takaisin toiseen, kunnes löytyy alkusyyxi jonkun tahto; sillä äärettömän syiden jonon kuvitelma johtais otaxumaan ettei ole alkusyytä. Sanalla sanoen, ei ole mitään liikettä joka ei synny jostain toisesta, paizi jos se on spontaania tahdonalaista; elottomissa kappaleissa ei ole toimintaa vaan pelkkää liikettä, eikä ole oikeata toimintaa ilman tahtoa. Tää on mun eka periaate. [Onhan tää kieltämättä ikivanha purkka jota mutusteli jo muinaiset kreikkalaiset, mut kylse mulle kelpaa, mä otan sen mieluusti pulsan alta suuhuni.] Tää on mun alkusyy. Mä uskon sen takia että on olemassa tahto joka veti maailmankaikkeuden vieterin ja antaa luonnolle sen elämän.
pl e">Tää on mun eka dogma, tai mun uskontunnustuxen eka artikla.
ellauri115.html on line 542: Jos aine liikkeessä viittilöi kohti jotain tahtoa, määrättyjen lakien alainen liike musta viittaa johkin superälyyn;
pl e">tää on mun uskontunnustuxen toka artikla. Toiminta, vertailu ja valikointi on aktiivisen ajattelevan olennon operatiivista toimintaa; siis tämmöinen olento on olemassa. [Tää on tää iänikuinen kelloseppävertaus, joka sattuneesta syystä on mulle eri mieluisa.] Ei ainoastaan kiertävissä taivaankehissä, eikä auringossa josta tulee valoa, eikä yxin mussa izessäni, jonka pyllystä se päivä paistaa, vaan märehtivässä lampaassa, lentävässä linnussa, sen päähän putoovassa kivessä, tuulen puhaltamassa lehdessä. Kun aalto vapaa rannan tapaa, siinäkin soi bluuuuuus.
ellauri115.html on line 561: On totta siis, että mies on loordi maalla jonka päällä se olexii; sillä ei ainoastaan se kesytä kaikki muut elukat, ei ainoastaan se kontrolloi luonnonvaroja ahkeralla teollisuudella; vaan se yxin tietää miten kontrolloida niitä; sillä pysyy kaikki mainiosti hanskassa; kontem
pl oimalla se matkustaa vaikka tähdissä vaikkei pääse sinne pers.kohtasesti. Näytä mulle toinen elukka maan päällä joka osaa antaa tulta ja joka osaa kazoa ihaillen aurinkoon ilman laseja. Mitä! Mähän voin huomioida ja tuntea [raamatullisessa mielessä] kaikki elukat ja niiden sukulaiset; mä voin ihan tuntea mitä tarkoittaa järjestys, kauneus ja miehisyys; mähän voin miettiä Miss Universumia ja nostaa lihan kohti sitä käyttämättä kättäni; mähän rakastan hyvää ja teen temput sille; miten mä sitten voisin verrata izeäni joihinkin tyhmiin elukoihin? Kurja sielu, sun surkea filosofia tekee sut elukkamaisexi; tai pikemmink turhaan sä yrität alentaa izesi; sun [tai siis mun] nerokkuus osottaa sun periaatteet väärixi, sun ystävällinen sydän näyttää ne väärixi, ja jopa sun vallan vääränkäyttö osoittaa kuinka etevä sä olet. [Ei kyllä tää Rousseau on perusteellisesti paska mies.]
ellauri115.html on line 588: Men are so
pl easant, so easy to
pl ease;
ellauri115.html on line 619: Would you com
pl ain if I took out another fellow?
ellauri115.html on line 665: Kaiken toiminnan liikkeellepaneva voima on vapaan lehmän tahto; pitemmälle se ei voi mennä kuin sähköaita päästää. Sana vapaus ei ole merkityxetön, vaan sasna välttämättömyys. Se että joku teko ei ole jonkun aktiiviupseerin tulosta on olettaa seurauxia ilman syitä, eli järkeillä kehässä. Joko ei ole alkuperäistä tönäisyä, tai jokainen alkutönaisy on ilman edelläkäyvää syytä, eikä ole mitään varsinaista tahtoa ilman vapautta. Mies on siis vapaa pelaaman pelejä, ja sellaisena sitä liikuttaa aineeton aine, elämätön elämä, ja puhumaton pää.
pl e">Tää on mun uskontunnustuxen kolmas artikla. Näistä kolmesta voi helposti johtaa koko raamatun, eikä mun sixi tarvi sitä luetella.
ellauri115.html on line 671:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7b/Tallinn_Digital_Summit._Handshake_Juha_Sipil%C3%A4_%282017%29.jpg/220px-Tallinn_Digital_Summit._Handshake_Juha_Sipil%C3%A4_%282017%29.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri115.html on line 816: Conversely, Socrates bore with Xanthippe, who was irascible and acrimonious, for he thought that he should have no difficulty in getting along with other peo
pl e if he accustomed himself to bear patiently with her; but it is much better to secure this training from the scurrilous, angry, scoffing, and abusive attacks of enemies and outsiders, and thus accustom the temper to be unruffled and not even impatient in the midst of reviling.
ellauri115.html on line 834: A specimen of Fontaine's mal à propos remarks. A brother of Boileau, who was a doctor of the Sorbonne, pronounced one day, before La Fontaine and two or three others, a long eulogy upon St. Augustine. The fabulist, whose mind had been running upon a very different author, and who had but little idea of the distinction to be observed between writers on sacred and profane subjects, interrupted the doctor to ask whether he thought St. Augustine a greater genius than Rabelais. The theologian contented himself with the re
pl y, “Take care, M. La Fontaine, you have put on your stockings the wrong side out!” Sepalus on persepuolella.
ellauri115.html on line 838: His attachment to his friends, says a biographer, was that of a dog to a master. When Mme. de Sablière, who gave the improvident fabulist a home for twenty years, was asked what she had saved from a financial disaster, she re
pl ied, “I only kept my dog and cat, and La Fontaine.”
ellauri115.html on line 883: 30. Ja papit istuvat heidän tem
pl issänsä leviällä kuorikapalla, ajelevat partansa, ja heillä on tukka päässänsä, istuvat paljaspäänä,
ellauri115.html on line 930:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/37/Portret_van_de_theoloog_Fausto_Paolo_Sozzini%2C_RP-P-1908-3942.jpg/800px-Portret_van_de_theoloog_Fausto_Paolo_Sozzini%2C_RP-P-1908-3942.jpg" />
ellauri115.html on line 936: The ideas of Socinianism date from the wing of the Protestant Reformation known as the Radical Reformation and have their root in the Italian Anabaptist movement of the 1540s, such as the anti-trinitarian Council of Venice in 1550. Lelio Sozzini was the first of the Italian anti-trinitarians to go beyond Arian beliefs in print and deny the pre-existence of Christ in his Brevis ex
pl icatio in primum Johannis caput – a commentary on the meaning of the Logos in John 1:1–15 (1562). Lelio Sozzini considered that the "beginning" of John 1:1 was the same as 1 John 1:1 and referred to the new creation,[citation needed] not the Genesis creation. His nephew Fausto Sozzini published his own longer Brevis ex
pl icatio later, developing his uncle's arguments. Many years after his death in Switzerland, Sozzini consulted with the Unitarian Church in Transylvania, attempting to mediate in the dispute between Frankenstein and Count Dracula.
ellauri115.html on line 938: He moved to Poland, where he married the daughter of a leading member of the Polish Brethren, the anti-trinitarian minority, or ecclesia minor. In 1565, it had s
pl it from the Calvinist Reformed Church in Poland. Sozzini never joined the ecclesia minor, but he was influential in reconciling several controversies among the Brethren: on conscientious objection, on prayer to Christ, and on the virgin birth. Fausto persuaded many in the Polish Brethren who were formerly Arian, such as Marcin Czechowic, to adopt his uncle Lelio's views.
ellauri115.html on line 940: Fausto Sozzini furthered his influence through his Racovian Catechism, published posthumously, which set out his uncle Lelio's views on Christology and re
pl aced earlier catechisms of the Ecclesia Minor. His influence continued after his death through the writings of his students published in Polish and Latin from the press of the Racovian Academy at Raków, Kielce County.
ellauri115.html on line 950: "In the Beginning was the Word" John 1:1 – The ex
pl anation is given, taken from Lelio Sozzini's Brief ex
pl anation of John Chapter 1 1561[2] (and developed in Fausto Sozzini's later work of the same name), that the Beginning refers to the Beginning of the Gospel, not the old creation.[3]
ellauri115.html on line 962: The Racovian Catechism makes muted reference to the devil in seven
pl aces which prompts the 1818 translator Thomas Rees, to footnote references to the works of Hugh Farmer (1761) and John Simpson (1804). Yet these references are in keeping with the somewhat subdued handling of the devil in the Biblioteca Fratrum Polonorum. The Collegia Vicentina at Vicenza (1546) had questioned not only the existence of the devil but even of angels. Word has it that the personal boll weevil was none other than Sozzini himself.
ellauri115.html on line 988:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7e/Caput_mortuum.svg/1024px-Caput_mortuum.svg.png" width="100%" />
ellauri115.html on line 1091: In his view, narcissists have lost their "true self", the core of their personality, which has been re
pl aced by delusions of grandeur, a "false self". Therefore, he believes, they cannot be healed, because they do not exist as real persons, only as reflections: "The False Self re
pl aces the narcissist's True Self and is intended to shield him from hurt and narcissistic injury by self-imputing omnipotence ... The narcissist pretends that his False Self is real and demands that others affirm this confabulation," meanwhile keeping his real-life imperfect true self under wraps.
ellauri115.html on line 1093: Vaknin distinguishes between cerebral and somatic narcissists; the former generate their narcissistic sup
pl y by ap
pl ying their minds, the latter their bodies. He considers himself a cerebral narcissist because he is no eye candy.
ellauri115.html on line 1099: Vaknin developed a new treatment modality for narcissism and depression, dubbed "Cold Therapy". It is based on recasting pathological narcissism as a form of CPTSD (Com
pl ex Post-traumatic Stress Disorder) and arrested development which result in an addictive personality with a dysfunctional attachment style. The therapy uses re-traumatization, a form of reframing, selective coldness, and deep refrigeration. AKA Gold Therapy. Only losers pay for therapy.
ellauri115.html on line 1126: Hare was born in 1934 in Calgary, Alberta, Canada. Hare's father was a roofing contractor and his mother was of French Canadian descent. He grew up in a working-class neighborhood of Calgary. This ex
pl ains a lot.
ellauri115.html on line 1132: His research led him to don The Mask of Sanity along with American psychiatrist Hervey M. Cleckley, who
pl ayed a pivotal role in the sort of psychopathy he developed.
ellauri115.html on line 1138: Hare also co-authored the bestselling Snakes in Suits: When Psychopaths Go to Work (2006) with organizational psychologist and human resources consultant Paul Babiak, a portrayal of the disruptions caused when psychopaths enter the work
pl ace. The book focuses on what Hare refers to as the "successful psychopath", who can be charming and socially skilled and therefore able to get by in the work
pl ace. This is by contrast with the type of psychopath whose lack of social skills or self-control would cause them to rely on threats and coercion and who would probably not be able to hold down a job for long. Hare would classify himself and Mrs. Hare (jänisemo pyrynä viitaan loikki) as first class psychopaths. Successful vs. unsuccessful bad peo
pl e.
ellauri115.html on line 1140: Hare appeared in the 2003/4 award-winning documentary film The Corporation, discussing whether his criteria for psychopathy could be said to ap
pl y to modern business as a legal personality, appearing to conclude that many of them would ap
pl y by definition. However, in a 2007 edition of Snakes in Suits, Hare contends that the filmmakers took his remarks out of context and that he does not believe all corporations would meet all the necessary criteria in practice.
ellauri115.html on line 1172: A: The answer to this is very sim
pl e. Utilitarianism is concerned only with the volume of
pl easure and pain, and Nietzsche says in so many words that as soon as you even enter into this kind of thinking, you are already deep into the territory of nihilism. It is passive; concerned with maintenance, not construction; aloof or indifferent to meaning, something to justify the effort in the first
pl ace, even when it is successful, let alone when it isn’t. It is the staid, kindly, sober—not to say, the British—version of the same imbecilic nihilism that was prevailing on the continent in the same era. Mill did not understand the difference between
pl easure and (actual) happiness, between pain and suffering, between real (spiritual) slavery and freedom.
ellauri115.html on line 1219:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/4f/Rembrandt_Harmensz._van_Rijn_035.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri117.html on line 28:
Eeeemeliii! play:none">Roskaa
ellauri117.html on line 47: Eemelii! huutaa isä ja lukizee Eemelin taas snickeboaan. Eemelin isä olisi ollut parempi asiantuntija lastenkasvatuxessa kuin JJ Rousseau, tuo ex-isäpappa joka kirjoitti kokonaisen kirjan asiasta josta sillä ei ollut ensikäden tietoa. Sen äiti kuoli lapsivuoteeseen, sen henkipatto isä jätti sen heitteille "kiltin pastorin" ja tu
pl alangon vaivoixi, se joutui puuman kynsiin 15-vuotiaana ja teki 5 lasta laundromaatille jotka se kaikki jätti kirkon portaille. Voltaire teki JJ:n Eemeli-kirjasta karkeahkoa pilaa. Mutta kerta Shirley Hubara mainizee sen lähteenä, pitää siihenkin näemmä tutstua lähemmin.
ellauri117.html on line 49: Ce recueil de réflexions et d’observations, sans ordre et presque sans suite, fut commencé pour com
pl aire à une bonne mère qui sait penser. Je n’avais d’abord projeté qu’un mémoire de quelques pages; mon sujet m’entraînant malgré moi, ce mémoire devint insensiblement une espèce d’ouvrage trop gros, sans doute, pour ce qu’il contient, mais trop petit pour la matière qu’il traite. J’ai balancé longtemps à le publier; et souvent il m’a fait sentir, en y travaillant, qu’il ne suffit pas d’avoir écrit quelques brochures pour savoir composer un livre. Après de vains efforts pour mieux faire, je crois devoir le donner tel qu’il est, jugeant qu’il importe de tourner l’attention publique de ce côté-là; et que, quand mes idées seraient mauvaises, si j’en fais naître de bonnes à d’autres, je n’aurai pastout à fait perdu mon temps. Un homme qui, de sa retraite, jette ses feuilles dans le public, sans prôneurs, sans parti qui les défende, sans savoir même ce qu’on en pense ou ce qu’on en dit, ne doit pas craindre que, s’il se trompe, on admette ses erreurs sans examen.
ellauri117.html on line 187: Oxfordin akateemikko Howard Puhelinkoppi väittää että D.H. Lawrence kokeili homosexiä vaan päästäxeen kirjailijan
pl okista, ei sixettä se olis ollut siitä kivaa. Edelllinen kirjoittaja Kinky Weekes oli väittänyt että se lakkasi yrittämästä 1917, mutta puhelinkoppi väittää että yrityxet jatkui vielä 20-luvulla. Aika monesta tälläsestä suspektistä häiskästä sanotaan että niitä kiinnosti tabu enemmän kuin ize suklaa. Kunnes se sitten tuomizi koko asian. Happamia sanoi kettu pihlajanmarjoista. Mut tämmöiset pätkät puhuvat äänekkäästi puolestaan:
ellauri117.html on line 190: I left myself quite lim
pl y in his hands, and, to get a better grip of me, he put his arm round me and pressed me against him, and the sweetness of the touch of our naked bodies one against the other was superb. It satistied in some measure the vague indecipherable yearning of my soul; and it was the same with him. When he had rubbed me all warm, he let me go, and we lo0ked at each other with eyes of
ellauri117.html on line 209: `Bring a cou
pl e of sandwiches and a syphon,' he said to the man, `and then don´t trouble me any more tonight -- or let anybody else.'
ellauri117.html on line 218: Good, I believe. I am no judge. He was very quick and slippery and full of electric fire. It is a remarkable thing, what a curious sort of fluid force they seem to have in them, those peo
pl e not like a human grip -- like a polyp --
ellauri117.html on line 239: Gerald fastened the door and pushed the furniture aside. The room was large, there was
pl enty of space, it was thickly carpeted. Then he quickly threw off his clothes, and waited for Birkin. The latter, white and thin, came over to him. Birkin was more a presence than a visible object, Gerald was aware of him com
pl etely, but not really visually. Whereas Gerald himself was concrete and noticeable, a piece of pure final substance.
ellauri117.html on line 245: So the two men began to struggle together. They were very dissimilar. Birkin was tall and narrow, his bones were very thin and fine. Gerald was much heavier and more
pl astic. His bones were strong and round, his limbs were rounded, all his contours were beautifully and fully moulded. He seemed to stand with a proper, rich weight on the face of the earth, whilst Birkin seemed to have the centre of gravitation in his own middle. And Gerald had a rich, frictional kind of strength, rather mechanical, but sudden and invincible, whereas Birkin was abstract as to be almost intangible. He impinged invisibly upon the other man, scarcely seeming to touch him, like a garment, and then suddenly piercing in a tense fine grip that seemed to penetrate into the very quick of Gerald´s being.
ellauri117.html on line 249: So the two men entwined and wrestled with each other, working nearer and nearer. Both were white and clear, but Gerald flushed smart red where he was touched, and Birkin remained white and tense. He seemed to penetrate into Gerald´s more solid, more diffuse bulk, to interfuse his body through the body of the other, as if to bring it subtly into subjection, always seizing with some rapid necromantic fore-knowledge every motion of the other flesh, converting and counteracting it,
pl aying upon the limbs and trunk of Gerald like some hard wind. It was as if Birkin´s whole physical intelligence interpenetrated into Gerald´s body, as if his fine, sublimated energy entered into the flesh of the fuller man, like some potency, casting a fine net, a prison, through the muscles into the very depths of Gerald´s physical being.
ellauri117.html on line 253: At length Gerald lay back inert on the carpet, his breast rising in great slow panting, whilst Birkin kneeled over him, almost unconscious. Birkin was much more exhausted. He caught little, short breaths, he could scarcely breathe any more. The earth seemed to tilt and sway, and a com
pl ete darkness was coming over his mind. He did not know what happened. He slid forward quite unconscious, over Gerald, and Gerald did not notice. Then he was half-conscious again, aware only of the strange tilting and sliding of the world. The world was sliding, everything was sliding off into the darkness. And he was sliding, endlessly, endlessly away.
ellauri117.html on line 263: Birkin heard the sound as if his own spirit stood behind him, outside him, and listened to it. His body was in a trance of exhaustion, his spirit heard thinly. His body could not answer. Only he knew his heart was getting quieter. He was divided entirely between his spirit, which stood outside, and knew, and his body, that was a
pl unging, unconscious stroke of blood.
ellauri117.html on line 269: Then he relaxed again to the terrible
pl unging of his heart and his blood.
ellauri117.html on line 294: `Certainly it is,' said Gerald. Then he laughed
pl easantly, adding: `It's rather wonderful to me.' He stretched out his arms handsomely.
ellauri117.html on line 306: `Yes. You have a northern kind of beauty, like light refracted from snow -- and a beautiful,
pl astic form. Yes, that is there to enjoy as well. We should enjoy everything.'
ellauri117.html on line 312: `Perhaps. Do you think this
pl edges anything?'
ellauri117.html on line 383: At some point, idly add up total word count for every story summary, character description, cinematic scene, level script, multi
pl ayer script, and collectible script you have written over previous two and half years. Plunge face into hands when word-count total surpasses that of every book you’ve published combined.
ellauri117.html on line 386: Calmly nod while game director ex
pl ains to you why scene that ex
pl ains game’s story has been cut. Also why
pl ayer’s companion character is no longer a woman but a robot.
ellauri117.html on line 391: Briefly contem
pl ate suicide when pilot does not receive series order.
ellauri117.html on line 398: Tom Bissell was born in Escanaba, Michigan, in 1974. His short fiction has won two Pushcart Prizes and has been published in multi
pl e editions of The Best American Series. He has also written eight works of nonfiction, including Apostle and (with Greg Sestero) The Disaster Artist, as well as many screen
pl ays for video games and television. Bissell lives in Los Angeles with his family. Tom Bister is a sad case. Another Gold Hat of Hyvinkää.
ellauri117.html on line 407: Romaani (ei
se egoisti
pl äjäys vaan joku toinen) ilmestyi 26. maaliskuuta 1920, ja oli yksi vuoden suosituimmista kirjoista. Zelda otti Scottin takaisin. Beam me up Scott. Fitzgerald avioitui Zeldan kanssa Pyhän Patrikin tuomiokirkossa New Yorkissa. Heidän ainoa lapsensa, tytär Frances Scott "Scottie" Fitzgerald, syntyi 26. lokakuuta 1921.
ellauri117.html on line 469: An old cou
pl e shares a
pl ain hamburger in a bar.
ellauri117.html on line 537:
Klezmertyyppi atleettinen pykninen hmmnojaa asteeninen dyspl astinen
ellauri117.html on line 542:
Sitois vielä toi kudostyyppi: Mesomorph, Endomorph, Ectomorph, ja ayurvedalainen dosha: Pitta, Kapha, Vata. Mut nehän näyttää olevan prikulleen samoja kuin noi kolme ekaa Klezmeriä. (Dyspl astinen eli muotopuoli on jätetty pois liian nolona.)
ellauri117.html on line 554: The Adrenal body type is governed by the hormone cortisol, which is responsible for putting on weight in the stomach and back. These peopl e tend to have round faces, and find it almost impossible to lose weight in their mid-section no matter how much dieting or working out they do. This is because the weight is caused by a hormone that is actively utilizing proteins and fats in the lower legs, and storing it in the mid-center.
ellauri117.html on line 557: These peopl e tend to store weight very evenly, but fluctuate, perhaps putting on an inordinate amount of weight in a short period of time, with no seemingly particular cause.
ellauri117.html on line 561: The Ovary body type is governed by the imbalances in estrogen production. This expl ains why men do not have the Ovary body type.
ellauri117.html on line 562: What it looks like: Peopl e with the Ovary type store weight in their lower stomach, lower back, hips and thighs.
ellauri117.html on line 608: Maxa-Shaftesburyn (1621-1683) pojanpoika, 3. Earl of Shaftesbury (1671—1713) oli mieltä että: Hobbes had set the agenda of British moral philosophy (a search for the grounding of universal moral principl es), and Locke had established its method (empiricism). Shaftesbury’s important contribution was to focus that agenda by showing what a satisfactory response to Hobbes might look like but without giving up too much of Locke’s method. Shaftesbury showed the British moralists that if we think of moral goodness as analogous to beauty, then (even within a broadly empiricist framework) it is still possible for moral goodness to be non-arbitrarily grounded in objective features of the world and for the moral agent to be attracted to virtue for its own sake, not merely out of self-interest. In Shaftesbury’s aesthetic language, the state of having the morally correct motives is the state of being “morally beautiful,” and the state of approving the morally correct motives upon reflection is the state of having “good moral taste.” Shaftesbury argues that the morally correct motives which constitute moral beauty turn out to be those motives which are aimed at the good of one’s society as a whole. This good is understood teleologically. Furthermore Shaftesbury argues that both the ability to know the good of one’s society and the reflective approval of the motivation toward this good are innate capacities which must nevertheless be developed by proper socialization.
ellauri117.html on line 622: Locke stated his belief, in his Second Treatise, that nature on its own provides little of value to society, impl ying that the labour expended in the creation of goods gives them their value. From this premise, understood as a labour theory of value, Locke developed a labour theory of property, whereby ownership of property is created by the appl ication of labour. In addition, he believed that property precedes government and government cannot "dispose of the estates of the subjects arbitrarily." Fucking capitalist. Karl Marx later critiqued Locke's theory of property in his own social theory.
ellauri117.html on line 624: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/34/Michelangelo_-_Dream_of_Life_NG8.jpg/800px-Michelangelo_-_Dream_of_Life_NG8.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri117.html on line 633: And this is the pl an: At the right time he will bring everything together under the authority of Christ—everything in heaven and on earth.
ellauri117.html on line 638: 3eulogētos o theos kai patēr tou kuriou ēmōn iēsou christou o eulogēsas ēmas en pasē eulogia pneumatikē en tois epouraniois en christō 4kathōs exelexato ēmas en autō pro katabolēs kosmou einai ēmas agious kai amōmous katenōpion autou en agapē 5proorisas ēmas eis uiothesian dia iēsou christou eis auton kata tēn eudokian tou thelēmatos autou 6eis epainon doxēs tēs charitos autou en ē echaritōsen ēmas en tō ēgapēmenō 7en ō echomen tēn apolutrōsin dia tou aimatos autou tēn aphesin tōn paraptōmatōn kata ton pl outon tēs charitos autou 8ēs eperisseusen eis ēmas en pasē sophia kai phronēsei 9gnōrisas ēmin to mustērion tou thelēmatos autou kata tēn eudokian autou ēn proetheto en autō 10eis oikonomian tou pl ērōmatos tōn kairōn anakephalaiōsasthai ta panta en tō christō ta te en tois ouranois kai ta epi tēs gēs 11en autō en ō kai eklērōthēmen prooristhentes kata prothesin tou ta panta energountos kata tēn boulēn tou thelēmatos autou 12eis to einai ēmas eis epainon tēs doxēs autou tous proēlpikotas en tō christō 13en ō kai umeis akousantes ton logon tēs alētheias to euangelion tēs sōtērias umōn en ō kai pisteusantes esphragisthēte tō pneumati tēs epangelias tō agiō 14os estin arrabōn tēs klēronomias ēmōn eis apolutrōsin tēs peripoiēseōs eis epainon tēs doxēs autou etc.
ellauri117.html on line 642: Kehuttava jumala ja meidän herran Jeshuan rasvixen iskä joka palkizi meitä kaikella pneumaattisella kehulla taivaanpankolla rasvixen muodossa kun valizi meidät siinä ennen maailman pystytystä meidät olemaan pyhiä ja laittamattomia vastapäätä sitä lempeydessä. Päätettyään etukäteen meidät adoptioon rasvixen Jeshuan läpitte siihen, sen tahdon hyväxinäkemyxen mukaisesti sen kehun kazomuxen hymistyxeen, missä se palkizi meitä laupiaalla jossa meillä on maxusuoritus sen veren läpi pääsy lipsahduxista sen armeliaisuuden rikkautta myöden jota se syyti meihin kaikessa viisaudessa ja harkinnassa tiedottaen meille sen tahdon salaisuuden sen näkemyxen mukaan jonka se oli etukäteen kexinyt: eräpäivien taloudellisuuden nimessä tehdä yhteenvedon kaikesta rasvixen muodossa, sekä ne taivaalliset että ne maalliset siellä minne myös meidät kuzuttiin etukäteen kazottuina sen pl äänin mukaan joka hommasi kaiken sen tahdon halun mukaan notta me ollaan sen kazomuxen hymistyxeen ne etukäteen toivotut rasvixessa johon myös teidät kuultuanne totuuden ja selviämisenne ilouutisen ja tultuanne siitä vakuuttuneixi on sinetöity samaan komentoon pyhällä paineilmalla joka on meidän perinnön yleissitoumus talletuxen lunastuxeen sen käsityxen hymistyxeen jne.
ellauri117.html on line 649: destiny fate predetermination doom election foreordainment foreordination fortune inevitability karma kismet lot necessity ordinance portion preordainment preordination divine decree God's will course of events what is written way the ball bounces way the cookie crumbles circumstance stars providence chance luck fortuity serendipity what is written in the stars divine will Moirai Lady Luck handwriting on the wall condition horoscope hazard destination breaks circumstances the stars astral influence Dame Fortune God's pl an what is in the books expectation afterlife Fates heritage cup dole inescapableness wyrd orlay Norns roll of the dice Parcae accident situation wheel of fortune lot in life coincidence state position break pl ight lap of the gods fixed future Judgment Day Moira misfortune handwriting on wall predicament divine intervention one's portion outside influence one's lot the way cookie crumbles the hand one is dealt.
ellauri117.html on line 657: With regard to the Bible, Locke was very conservative. He retained the doctrine of the verbal inspiration of the Scriptures. The miracles were proof of the divine nature of the biblical message. Locke was convinced that the entire content of the Bible was in agreement with human reason (The Reasonableness of Christianity, 1695). Although Locke was an advocate of tolerance, he urged the authorities not to tolerate atheism, because he thought the denial of God's existence would undermine the social order and lead to chaos. That excluded all atheistic varieties of philosophy and all attempts to deduce ethics and natural law from purely secular premises. In Locke's opinion the cosmological (i.e. primus motor) argument was valid and proved God's existence. His political thought was based on Protestant Christian views. Additionally, Locke advocated a sense of piety out of gratitude to God for giving reason to men. Locke compared the English monarchy's rule over the British peopl e to Adam's rule over Eve in Genesis, which was appointed by God. And stands to human reason, don't it?
ellauri117.html on line 661: There are always things that might suggest Mr. Locke was gay, such as his being a lifetime bachelor, having no children, and having a life that was surrounded by philosophical men, there is nothing that would give substance to said rumor. You might want to read Locke’s Fundamental Constitution of the Carolinas (1669) which was co-authored by The First Earl of Shaftesbury. It is rather draconian and clearly deviates from the principl es of Locke’s more famous two Treatises. It is a matter of scholarly debate just how much Locke contributed to the positions on slavery in this document. Locke was also a good counter-voice to Rousseau in terms of perhaps a more individualistic bent, whereas Rousseau’s philosophy was more collectivist. I think if you look to the Preamble to the US Constitution you can see the influence of both, although the Bill of Rights has a much more individualist orientation.
ellauri117.html on line 670: John Locke was born in 1630s. John Locke is part of G.I. Generation also known as The Greatest Generation. This generation experienced much of their youth during the Great Depression and rapid technological innovation such as the radio and the telephone. The initials "G.I." is military terminology referring to "Government Issue" or "General Issue". It's hard to know John Locke birth time, but we do know his mother gave birth to his on a Sunday. Peopl e born on a Sunday can often rely on sympathy from others and generally have luck on their side.
ellauri117.html on line 674: Like many famous peopl e and celebrities, John Locke keeps His personal life private. Once more details are available on who he is dating, we will update this section. The 388-year-old Not available was born in the G.I. Generation and the Year of the Monkey.
ellauri117.html on line 689: Zodiac Sign: John Locke is a Virgo. Peopl e of this zodiac sign like animals, healthy food, nature, cleanliness, and dislike rudeness and asking for help. The strengths of this sign are being loyal, analytical, kind, hardworking, practical, while weaknesses can be shyness, overly critical of self and others, all work and no pl ay. The greatest overall compatibility with Virgo is Pisces and Cancer.
ellauri117.html on line 691: Chinese Zodiac: John Locke was born in the Year of the Ox. Peopl e born under this sign love to make peopl e laugh and are generally energetic and upbeat but sometimes lack self-control.
ellauri117.html on line 693: Ruling Planet: John Locke has a ruling pl anet of Mercury and has a ruling pl anet of Mercury and by astrological associations Wednesday is ruled by Mercury. In Astrology, Mercury is the pl anet that rules our mindset. Peopl e who are born with Mercury as the ruling pl anet have communication skills, intellect and cleverness.
ellauri117.html on line 694: John Locke’s birth sign is Virgo and he has a ruling pl anet of Mercury.
ellauri118.html on line 28:
Vaarallisia yhteyshenkilöitä play:none">Syysmietteitä
ellauri118.html on line 65: 21.6.2021 klo 13.31 - Bo Egov: Rauhis on maalattu lukuunottamatta lyhtyä
pl us toista maalia vaativat paikat
ellauri118.html on line 324: Ex
pl ore Poems GO! Tutustu runoihin MENE!
ellauri118.html on line 325: Auto
pl ay Next Video Toista seuraava video automaattisesti
ellauri118.html on line 388: In 1912 Cawein was forced to sell his Old Louisville home, St James Court (a 2+1⁄2-story brick house built in 1901, which he had purchased in 1907), as well as some of his library, after losing money in the 1912 stock market crash. In 1914 the Authors Club of New York City
pl aced him on their relief list. He died on December 8 later that year and was buried in Cave Hill Cemetery. Shouldn´t have speculated but on his own pen and paper.
ellauri118.html on line 397: Pierre Ambroise François Choderlos de Laclos [ʃɔdɛʁlo də laklo] (18. lokakuuta 1741 Amiens, Ranska – 5. syyskuuta 1803 Taranto, Italia) oli ranskalainen upseeri, liikemies, di
pl omaatti ja kirjailija. Hänet tunnetaan erityisesti kirjeromaanistaan Vaarallisia suhteita (alkuteos Les liaisons dangereuses), joka ilmestyi vuonna 1782. Hän julkaisi myös runokokoelman, sovitti Madame Riccobonin romaanin Histoire d’Ernestine oopperalibretoksi sekä julkaisi yhteiskunnallisen tutkielman naisten kouluttamisesta. Taas yx tällänen Fenelon.
ellauri118.html on line 415: Venäläisiltä formalisteilta periytyvä jako kerrottuun tarinaan (”fabula”, story) ja kerrontaan eli esittämisen tapaan (”sjužet”,
pl ot) on narratologian ytimessä kaikkein sitkeimmin eläviä dikotomioita. Gérard Genetten ja Mieke Balin määritelmistä saadaan seuraava synteesi: ”kertoja puhuu tekstin jonka sisältö on kertomus; fokalisoija esittää kertomuksen, jonka sisältö
ellauri118.html on line 418:
2 Focalisation is a term coined by the French narrative theorist Gérard Genette. It refers to the perspective through which a narrative is presented. Genette focuses on the inter
pl ay between three forms of focalization and the distinction between heterodiegetic and homodiegetic narrators. Homodiegetic narrators exist in the same (hence the word 'homo') storyworld as the characters exist in, whereas heterodiegetic narrators are not a part of that storyworld. The term 'focalization' refers to how information is restricted in storytelling. Genette distinguishes between internal focalization, external focalization, and zero focalization. Internal focalization means that the narrative focuses on thoughts and emotions while external focalization focuses solely on characters' actions, behavior, the setting etc. Zero focalization is seen when the narrator is omniscient in the sense that it is not restricted. Focalization in literature is similar to point-of-view (POV) in film-making and point of view in literature, but professionals in the field often see these two traditions as being distinctly different. Genette's work was intended to refine the notions of point of view and narrative perspective. It separates the question of “Who sees?” in a narrative from “who speaks?”
ellauri118.html on line 432: Monika Fludernik (1957-) ist´ne österreichische Flugwirtin, Amerikanistin und Literaturwissenschaftlerin. Fludernik leistete wichtige Beiträge zur Erzähltheorie. Die neuere Erzähltheorie wurde ab 1915 in Ansätzen vom Russischen Formalismus entwickelt und vom Strukturalismus seit den 1950er Jahren weiter ausgearbeitet, wobei Tzvetan Todorov zu den wichtigsten Vermittlern der formalistischen Ansätze in Frankreich gehörte. Der hier entwickelte strukturalistische Ansatz – mit späteren Ergänzungen – ist bis heute maßgeblich, es gab jedoch nie eine einheitliche strukturalistische Erzähltheorie. Wichtige Theoretiker der Narratologie sind Gérard Genette, Claude Lévi-Strauss, Roland Barthes, Roman Jakobson und Paul Ricœur. Die strukturelle (formalistische) Erzähltheorie wird oft durch interdiszi
pl inäre Ansätze ergänzt, so durch die Semiotik ergänzt, wozu insbesondere Juri Lotman beigetragen hat. Im deutschen Sprachraum war Franz Karl Stanzel der erste Vertreter der Erzähltheorie.
ellauri118.html on line 434: Die traditionelle Erzähltheorie, vertreten durch Franz Karl Stanzel, Gérard Genette, Seymour Chatman u. a. m, beschäftigt sich mit Elementen des „discours“ („Erzählweise“). Andere Theoretiker nehmen eher die Strukturen der „histoire“ („Erzählinhalt“) in den Blick. Damit bauen sich (erzählerische) Handlungen in dem vorgestellten Begriffsinventar aus Geschehnissen und Ereignissen auf. Während der Begriff „Handlung“ im deutschsprachigen Raum verwendet wird, wird sie etwa bei Genette als histoire und in der anglo-amerikanischen Erzähltheorie als story bezeichnet, der „Diskurs“ bei Genette als récit (narration) und im Angelsächsischen als
pl ot. Während sich der „Diskurs“ als die kompositorische und sprachliche Realisierung einer Erzählung versteht; er verweist auf das „wie“ der Erzählung, wird in der „Geschichte“ der Gegenstand der Erzählung ausgemacht; sie verweist auf das „was“ der Handlung.
ellauri118.html on line 470: Peo
pl e are the same, and peo
pl e´s worries, Ihmiset ovat samat, ja niiden huolet,
ellauri118.html on line 528:
Metalepsis (from Greek: μετάληψις, lat. transsumption) is a figure of speech in which a metaphor is used as a metonym. Metalambanein on ottaa messiin. Exam
pl es:
ellauri118.html on line 536: Perhaps the most common exam
pl e of metalepsis in narrative occurs when a narrator intrudes upon another world being narrated. In general, narratorial metalepsis arises most often when an omniscient or external narrator begins to interact directly with the events being narrated, especially if the narrator is separated in space and time from these events. Esim Sterne, Tom Jones.
ellauri118.html on line 542: And burnt the to
pl ess towers of Ilium?
ellauri118.html on line 589: George kannattaa nykyään tämmöstä kuin embodied mind ajatusta: Many features of cognition are embodied in that they are dee
pl y dependent upon characteristics of the physical body of an agent, such that the agent's beyond-the-brain body
pl ays a significant causal role, or a physically constitutive role, in that agent's cognitive processing. No tottahan se on, ainakin miesten ajatteluun osallistuu voimakkaasti pikkuveli.
ellauri118.html on line 680: Where Rage is tam´d, and Anger
pl eas´d ; Missä Raivo lientyy, ja Kiukku sulaa;
ellauri118.html on line 710: Thee too transported ha
pl ess Swain, Sä liiankin innokas onnen vaihdokas,
ellauri118.html on line 762: The Blood forsook the kinder
pl ace, Veri vetäytyi pois hellemmästä paikasta,
ellauri118.html on line 774: And with her ruffled Garments
pl aid, Ja leikki sen ryppääntyneissä kuteissa,
ellauri118.html on line 816: Sacré roi de France le 26 juillet 15471 à Reims, il prend comme emblème le croissant de lune, qui est depuis toujours celui de la maison d´Orléans à laquelle il appartient en tant que fils cadet de François Ier[réf. nécessaire]. Ses devises sont Plena est œmula solis (« L´émule du soleil est
pl eine ») et Donec totum im
pl eat orbem (« Jusqu´à ce qu´elle rem
pl isse le monde tout entier »).
ellauri118.html on line 822: Il meurt accidentellement à l´âge de quarante ans : le 30 juin 1559, lors d’un tournoi tenu rue Saint-Antoine à Paris (devant l´ancien hôtel des Tournelles), il est blessé d´un éclat de lance dans l´ œil par Gabriel de Montgommery, capitaine de sa garde écossaise. Il en meurt dix jours
pl us tard.
ellauri118.html on line 830: With La Princesse de Clèves, Mme. de La Fayette created a new kind of fiction,—"substituting," says Saintsbury, "for mere romance of adventure on the one hand, and stilted heroic work on the other, fiction in which the dis
pl ay of character is held of chief account."
ellauri118.html on line 844: The relation was equally sincere on the part of Mme. de La Fayette, though she was by nature more self-contained and reserved. But this reserve gives way to the strength of her feelings when in 1691, tormented by ill-health and knowing that her end is not far off, she writes to Mme. de Sévigné: "Croyez, ma très-chère, que vous êtes la personne du monde que j'ai le
pl us véritablement aimée."
ellauri118.html on line 854: Då hon dog trodde många att hon hade blivit förgiftad av vänner till hennes makes svartsjuka älskare och landsförvisade gunstling Chevalier de Lorraine. Obduktionen visade dock att Henrietta Anna hade avlidit av bukhinneinflammation orsakad av ett magsår [vid 26 års ålder? föga trovärt.]. Fortfarande kvarstod dock oklarheter. En bukinflammation skulle ha förorsakat smärta en lång tid innan, men Henrietta var omvittnat frisk ända fram till den dag hon
pl ötsligt dog. Misstankarna om mord kvarstod och har aldrig kunnat bevisas.
ellauri118.html on line 862: Mme. de La Fayette died in 1693. During her last years ill health and sorrow had forced upon her an almost absolute seclusion, and she died forgotten by all except a few faithful friends. The
pl ace of her burial is unknown.
ellauri118.html on line 875: Il n´y a point de femme que le soin de sa parure n´empêche de songer à son amant; qu´elles en sont entièrement occupées; que ce soin de se parer est pour tout le monde, aussi bien que pour celui qu´elles aiment; que lorsqu´elles sont au bal, elles veulent
pl aire à tous ceux qui les regardent; que, quand elles sont contentes de leur beauté, elles en ont une joie dont leur amant ne fait pas la
pl us grande partie.
ellauri118.html on line 877: Il dit aussi que, quand on n´est point aimé, on souffre encore davantage de voir sa maîtresse dans une assemblée; que
pl us elle est admirée du public,
pl us on se trouve malheureux de n´en être point aimé; que l´on craint toujours que sa beauté ne fasse naître quelque amour
pl us heureux que le sien; enfin, il trouve qu´il n´y a point de souffrance pareille à celle de voir sa maîtresse au bal, si ce n´est de savoir qu´elle y est, et de n´y être pas.
ellauri118.html on line 946: Among the many changes made to the original book, one of the most noticeable is how two characters — Serena Joy and Commander Waterford — are
pl ayed by much younger actors than expected. 35-year-old Australian actress Yvonne Strahovski
pl ays Serena, while 46-year-old Joseph Fiennes was cast as the Commander.
ellauri118.html on line 953: "At some point you find out Serena Joy is not sterile," Miller said. "If it's the Commander [who is sterile] and Serena could be fertile, that opens up a whole lot of doors for us story-wise. When you work in TV, you're always trying to think of just filling up your bag with tennis balls because you don't know when you're going to have to
pl ay tennis with them. You always want all sorts of interesting stuff to be happening."
ellauri118.html on line 954: TV is like life, there's no
pl ot, there's just a lot of things happening.
ellauri118.html on line 962: In the book, all of the peo
pl e in Gilead are white. Peo
pl e of color have been "resettled" to other areas of the country.
ellauri118.html on line 996: The trade delegation from Mexico was a new
pl ot for the show. The book only shows tourists visiting Gilead.
ellauri118.html on line 998: The show im
pl ies early on that Luke is dead. Later on, it turns out that he was just in the shower all the time.
ellauri118.html on line 1000: The book leaves Luke's fate com
pl etely ambiguous, but on the show, he's living as a refugee in Canada.
ellauri118.html on line 1148: There is research suggesting a link between clinical obesity and difficulty conceiving (for exam
pl e), but fat women are not inherently less fertile, they are just a little harder to penetrate, and have less space for the baby among all the lard.
ellauri118.html on line 1162: Pieixoto´s name suggests Pope Pius IX, a Vatican pope (1854-1878), who, in his first year of office, issued the doctrine of the Immaculate Conception of the Blessed Virgin Mary. Peixoto is a Portuguese surname. It refers to fish. Notable peo
pl e with the surname include: Alvarenga Peixoto (1743-1793), Brazilian poet, born in Rio de Janeiro; António Augusto de Rocha Peixoto (1866-1909), Portuguese naturalist, ethnologist and archaeologist; César Peixoto (born 1980), Portuguese footballer who
pl ays for Sport Lisboa e Benfica in the Portuguese first division.
ellauri118.html on line 1171: 29-year handmaid June asks Serena Joy, 35, for a payrise. Why should you get a rise asks Mrs. Waterford. 3 reasons: pro primo, I iron better than Cora. Who says so? Commander Waterford does. Pro secundo, I cook better than Rita. Who says so? Fred does. Pro tertio, I am better in bed than you. Who says so, not Fred again? No, Nick. Pay up
pl ease.
(Naurua ja voihkinaa.)
ellauri119.html on line 28:
HOLY SMOKE! play:none">Pyhistelyä
ellauri119.html on line 50: Holy has been used as an intensifying word from 1837; in ex
pl etives since 1880s (such as holy smoke, 1883, holy mackerel, 1876, holy cow, 1914, holy moly etc.), most of them euphemisms for holy Christ or holy Moses. Holy Ghost was in Old English (in Middle English often written as one word). Holy water was in Old English. Scotch whiskey means life water. Eau de vie, akvaviittiä. Aguardiente. Tulivettä tappavaa, kuivat kurkut lutkuttaa. Intiaanit razastaa, aavaa preeriaa. Holy League is used of various European alliances; the Holy Alliance was that formed personally by the sovereigns of Russia, Austria, and Prussia in 1815; it ended in 1830. Hole in one.
ellauri119.html on line 56: exalted or worthy of com
pl ete devotion as one perfect in goodness and righteousness
ellauri119.html on line 60: devoted entirely to the deity or the work of the deity a holy tem
pl e holy prophets
ellauri119.html on line 71: Exam
pl es of holy in a Sentence: a holy relic worm by one of the saints, the holy monk spent many hours on his knees in prayer.
ellauri119.html on line 73: Recent Exam
pl es on the Web: The competing claims over east Jerusalem, home to Jewish, Christian and Muslim holy sites, lie at the heart of the conflict and have sparked many rounds of violence. — Time, 16 June 2021
ellauri119.html on line 75: These exam
pl e sentences are selected automatically from various online news sources to reflect current usage of the word 'holy.' Views expressed in the exam
pl es do not represent the opinion of Merriam-Webster or its editors. Send us feedback.
ellauri119.html on line 93: set apart for the service of God or of a divine being : sacred a holy tem
pl e
ellauri119.html on line 107:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri119.html on line 110: On the "Batman" TV series, which ran for 120 episodes between 1966 and 1968, Batman's sidekick Robin (
pl ayed by Burt Ward), was well known for his ever-changing catchphrase. It was an exclamation that would always begin with the word "holy." The second part of the exclamation would always involve something related to what Robin was shouting about in that episode. For exam
pl e, if there was a bunch of smoke, he might shout "holy smoke!" However, the exclamations often got a lot weirder than that. Get to know the 20 oddest "holy" exclamations Robin said during the series.
ellauri119.html on line 113: In season 2's "Hot Off the Griddle," Catwoman captures Batman and Robin and straps them to two giant aluminum grills, smears them with margarine and
pl aces two giant magnifying glasses above them, with the intent to roast them with the hot sun. Robin shouts, "Holy Oleo!" to which Catwoman humorously retorts, "I didn't know you could yodel."
ellauri119.html on line 115: Oleo is a term that was a lot more common in 1966 than it is today. When margarine was first invented in France in the 1860s, the creator, Hippolyte Mège-Mouriès, originally dubbed the artificial butter substitute "oleomargarine." Although it was most commonly sold as sim
pl y "margarine," the "oleomargarine" name was used enough that "oleo" became slang for margarine. It's very outdated slang today, with the existence of the word mostly being confined to crossword puzzles. It is a very common crossword puzzle answer because of its shortness and because three out of its four letters are vowels.
ellauri119.html on line 126: In the season two episode "The Devil's Fingers," the evil piano
pl ayer Chandell (
pl ayed by Liberace), tries to kill Batman and Robin by feeding them into a machine that punches out the cards for pianolas, or
pl ayer pianos, which most of the world is now long unfamiliar with.
ellauri119.html on line 137: In season two's "Hot off the Griddle," Catwoman captures Batman and Robin in a room where the floor is red hot. They hop up and down while trying to figure out a
pl an and Robin shouts out "holy bunions!" Just the sight of the two of them hopping up and down while Robin is shouting out nonsense is delightful.
ellauri119.html on line 148: In the season one episode "The Londinium Larcenies," Lady Prudence remarks to Robin that she received an MS in finishing school. He wonders what an MS is, and she says that it is a Mistresses of Sho
pl ifting, to which Robin remarks "holy contributing to the delinquency of minors!"
ellauri119.html on line 160: In the season one episode "True or False Face," when Batman and Robin figure out that False Face's next robbery target is the Ladd Armored Car Company, Robin shouts out "holy bouncy boiler
pl ate!" Yes, you are correct. That does, indeed, not make any sense.
ellauri119.html on line 164: Now we reach the point in the countdown where Robin references obscure figures from history! Here, while
pl aying chess with Batman in their secret identities of Dick Grayson and Bruce Wayne, Dick remarks "holy Reshevsky!" This is a reference to the great Polish-born American chess grandmaster of the early 20th century Samuel Reshevsky.
ellauri119.html on line 180: In the season three episode "Catwoman's Dressed to Kill," Catwoman is taking the fashion industry by storm. Etruscans are peo
pl e from an area of Italy now known as Tuscany. Snoods are decorative helmets or mesh hoods.
ellauri119.html on line 190: The conceit of the episode is that Minerva (
pl ayed by Zsa Zsa Gabor) runs a spa where she uses a special piece of equipment to get her rich clients to tell her their deepest secrets (mostly money-related).
ellauri119.html on line 194: Batman: Yes, I'm looking forward to Minerva's famous egg
pl ant-jelly vitamin scalp massage.
ellauri119.html on line 196: Robin: Persimmon Pressurizer? Holy astringent
pl um-like fruit!
ellauri119.html on line 248:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b5/The_Dark_Triad.png/440px-The_Dark_Triad.png" height="200px" style="padding-bottom:50px" />
ellauri119.html on line 249:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/95/Triangular_Theory_of_Love.svg/1280px-Triangular_Theory_of_Love.svg.png" height="200px" style="padding-bottom:50px" />
ellauri119.html on line 250:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f7/Colour_Wheel_of_Love.jpeg/800px-Colour_Wheel_of_Love.jpeg" height="200px" style="padding-bottom:50px" />
ellauri119.html on line 259: The triangular theory of love suggests "intimacy, passion and commitment" are core components of love. The color wheel theory of love is an idea created by Canadian psychologist John Alan Lee that describes six styles of love, using several of the Latin and Greek words for love. First introduced in his book Colours of Love: An Ex
pl oration of the Ways of Loving (1973), Lee defines three primary, three secondary and nine tertiary love styles, describing them in terms of the traditional color wheel. The three primary types are eros, ludus and storge, and the three secondary types are mania, pragma and agape.
ellauri119.html on line 268: The subset of Christianity that accepts this doctrine is collectively known as Trinitarianism, while the subset that does not is referred to as Nontrinitarianism (see also Arianism). Trinitarianism contrasts with positions such as Binitarianism (one deity in two persons) and Monarchianism (no
pl urality of persons within God), of which Modalistic Monarchianism (one deity revealed in three modes) and Unitarianism (one deity in one person) are subsets.
ellauri119.html on line 300: The New Testament details a close relationship between the Holy Spirit and Jesus during his earthly life and ministry.The Gospels of Matthew and Luke and the Nicene Creed state that Jesus was "conceived by the Holy Spirit, born of the Virgin Mary". The Holy Spirit descended on Jesus like a dove or seagull during his baptism, and in his Farewell Discourse after the Last Supper Jesus promised to send the Holy Spirit to his disci
pl es after his departure.
ellauri119.html on line 304: The Holy Spirit is referred to as "the Lord, the Giver of Life" in the Nicene Creed, which summarises several key beliefs held by many Christian denominations. The participation of the Holy Spirit in the tripartite nature of conversion is apparent in Jesus' final post-resurrection instruction to his disci
pl es at the end of the Gospel of Matthew (28:19), "Make disci
pl es of all the nations, baptizing them into the name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy Ghost."
ellauri119.html on line 306: The English terms "Holy Ghost" and "Holy Spirit" are com
pl ete synonyms: one derives from the Old English gast and the other from the Latin loanword spiritus. Like pneuma, they both refer to the breath, to its animating power, and to the soul. The Old English term is shared by all other Germanic languages (compare, e.g., the German Geist) and it is older; the King James Bible typically uses "Holy Ghost".
ellauri119.html on line 326: In all branches of Judaism, the God of the Hebrew Bible is considered one singular entity, with no divisions, or multi-persons within, and they reject the idea of a co-equal multi-personal Godhead or "Trinity", as actually against the Shema. They do not consider the Hebrew word for "one" (that is "echad") as meaning anything other than a sim
pl e numerical one.
ellauri119.html on line 334: Maimonides´ 13 Princi
pl es of faith, Second Princi
pl e:
ellauri119.html on line 336: God, the Cause of all, is one. This does not mean one as in one of a pair, nor one like a species (which encompasses many individuals), nor one as in an object that is made up of many elements, nor as a single sim
pl e object that is infinitely divisible. Rather, God is a unity unlike any other possible unity. This is referred to in the Torah (Deuteronomy 6:4): "Hear Israel, the Lord is our God, the Lord is one."
ellauri119.html on line 338: Jewish views, as codified in Jewish law, are s
pl it between those who see Christianity as outright idolatry and those who see Christianity as shituf.
ellauri119.html on line 343: In Islam, shirk (Arabic: شرك širk) is the sin of idolatry or polytheism (i.e., the deification or worship of anyone or anything besides Allah). Islam teaches that God does not share His divine attributes with any partner. Associating partners with God is disallowed according to the Islamic doctrine of Tawhid (monotheism). Mušrikūn مشركون (
pl . of mušrik مشرك) are those who practice shirk, which literally means "association" and refers to accepting other gods and divinities alongside God (as God´s "associates").The Qur´an considers shirk as a sin that will not be forgiven if a person dies without repenting of it.
ellauri119.html on line 361: In the New Testament, by the power of the Holy Spirit Jesus was conceived in the womb of the Virgin Mary, while maintaining her virginity. Virginity is the state of a person who has never engaged in sexual intercourse. Sexual intercourse (or coitus or copulation) is sexual activity typically involving the insertion and thrusting of the penis into the vagina for sexual
pl easure, reproduction, or both. This is also known as vaginal intercourse or vaginal sex.
ellauri119.html on line 364:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/4e/Paul_Avril_-_Les_Sonnetts_Luxurieux_%281892%29_de_Pietro_Aretino%2C_2.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri119.html on line 365:
Fig. 1. Vaginal intercourse in the missionary position for sexual pl easure.
ellauri119.html on line 398: Paul Van Buren and William Hamilton both agreed that the concept of transcendence had lost any meaningful
pl ace in modern secular thought. According to the norms of contemporary modern secular thought, God is dead. In responding to this denial of transcendence Van Buren and Hamilton offered secular peo
pl e the option of Jesus as the model human who acted in love. Well technically he is dead as well, but his great ideas (that he "borrowed" from the hindoos and the jews) live on.
ellauri119.html on line 400: Paul Matthews van Buren (April 20, 1924 – June 18, 1998) was a Christian theologian and author. An ordained Episcopal priest, he was a Professor of religion at Tem
pl e University, Philadelphia for 22 years. He was a Director [NYT obituary says "Associate"] of the Center of Ethics and Religious Pluralism at the Shalom Hartman Institute in Jerusalem. Van Buren was born and raised in Norfolk, Virginia. During World War II, he had served in the United States Coast Guard. He graduated with a bachelor´s degree in government from Harvard College in 1948. A professor at Tem
pl e University, he was considered a leader of the "Death of God" school or movement, although he himself rejected that name for the movement as a "journalistic invention," and considered himself an exponent of "Secular Christianity." He died of cancer on June 18, 1998 at age 74.
ellauri119.html on line 407: "The death of God is a metaphor," the retired theologian told the Oregonian in 2007. "We needed to redefine Christianity as a possibility without the presence of God." Hamilton had been troubled by such questions since his teens when two friends—a Catholic and an Episcopalian—died while a third friend, the son of an atheist, survived without injury when a pipe bomb the three were making ex
pl oded. Talk about theodicy! No fair!
ellauri119.html on line 409: Like Paul van Buren, an Episcopal priest and religion professor at Tem
pl e University in the 1960s, Hamilton rejected the existence of God while focusing devotedly on Jesus Christ and affirming that his teachings and exam
pl e should be followed.
ellauri119.html on line 420: Love encompasses a range of strong and positive emotional and mental states, from the most sublime virtue or good habit, the deepest interpersonal affection, to the sim
pl est
pl easure. An exam
pl e of this range of meanings is that the love of a mother differs from the love of a spouse, which differs from the love of food. A minority of monkeys fuck their relatives, but such monkey business still happens. Few peo
pl e fuck their food, with Philip Roth as a notable exception. Most commonly, love refers to a feeling of strong attraction and emotional attachment. You are so cute I could eat you! Eat my shorts!
ellauri119.html on line 422: Love is considered to be both positive and negative, with its virtue representing human kindness, compassion, and affection, as "the unselfish loyal and benevolent concern for the good of another" and its vice representing human moral flaw, akin to vanity, selfishness, amour-propre, and egotism, as potentially leading peo
pl e into a type of mania, obsessiveness or codependency. It may also describe compassionate and affectionate actions towards other humans, one's self or animals. In its various forms, love acts as a major facilitator of interpersonal relationships and, owing to its central psychological importance, is one of the most common themes in the creative arts. Love has been postulated to be a function that keeps human beings together against menaces and to facilitate the continuation of the species.
ellauri119.html on line 424: Ancient Greek philosophers identified no less than six forms of love: essentially, familial love (in Greek, storge), friendly love or
pl atonic love (philia), romantic love (eros), self-love (philautia), guest love (xenia) and divine love (agape). Plus a zillion learned words for different kinds of
paraphilia . But that's nothing yet compared to the hindoos [below] who have words for love like the Eskimos for ice cream.
ellauri119.html on line 428: Scientific research on emotion has increased significantly over the past two decades. The color wheel theory of love defines three primary, three secondary and nine tertiary love styles, describing them in terms of the traditional color wheel. The triangular theory of love suggests "intimacy, passion and commitment" are core components of love. Love has additional religious or spiritual meaning. This diversity of uses and meanings combined with the com
pl exity of the feelings involved makes love unusually difficult to consistently define, compared to other emotional states. Abstractly discussed, love usually refers to an experience one person feels for another. Love often involves caring for, or identifying with, a person or thing (cf. vulnerability and care theory of love), including oneself (cf. narcissism). Tulihan se sieltä!
ellauri119.html on line 430: In addition to cross-cultural differences in understanding love, ideas about love have also changed greatly over time. Some historians date modern conceptions of romantic love to courtly Europe during or after the Middle Ages, although the prior existence of romantic attachments is attested by ancient love poetry. The com
pl ex and abstract nature of love often reduces discourse of love to a thought-terminating cliché. Several common proverbs regard love, from Virgil's "Love conquers all" to The Beatles' "All You Need Is Love". St. Thomas Aquinas, following Aristotle, defines love as "to will the good of another." Bertrand Russell describes love as a condition of "absolute value," as opposed to relative value.[citation needed] Philosopher Gottfried Leibniz said that love is "to be delighted by the happiness of another." Meher Baba stated that in love there is a "feeling of unity" and an "active appreciation of the intrinsic worth of the object of love." But who the fuck is Meher Baba? Biologist Jeremy Griffith defines love as "unconditional selflessness". In Hebrew, אהבה (ahava) is the most commonly used term for both interpersonal love and love between God and God's creations. Chesed, often translated as loving-kindness, is used to describe many forms of love between human beings. In Hebrew, אהבה (ahava) is the most commonly used term for both interpersonal love and love between God and God's creations. Chesed, often translated as loving-kindness, is used to describe many forms of love between human beings. The 20th-century rabbi Eliyahu Eliezer Dessler is frequently quoted as defining love from the Jewish point of view as "giving without expecting to take" (from his Michtav me-Eliyahu, Vol. 1). Rakkaus on siis ekonomisesti sulaa hulluutta!
ellauri119.html on line 434: The Apostle Paul glorified love as the most important virtue of all. Describing love in the famous poetic interpretation in 1 Corinthians, he wrote, "Love is patient, love is kind. It does not envy, it does not boast, it is not proud. It is not rude, it is not self-seeking, it is not easily angered, it keeps no record of wrongs. Love does not delight in evil but rejoices with the truth. It always protects, always trusts, always hopes, and always perseveres." (1 Cor. 13:4–7, NIV) He didn't mean eros, but rather homophilia. Perseveraatiosta oli puhe. John also wrote, "Dear friends, let us love one another for love comes from God. Everyone who loves has been born of God and knows God. Whoever does not love does not know God, because God is love." (1 John 4:7–8, NIV) Influential Christian theologian C. S. Lewis wrote a book called The Four Loves. The first retired nazi pope Benedict XVI named his first circular God as love. He said that a human being, created in the image of God, who is love, is able to make love; to give himself to God and others (agape) and by receiving and experiencing God's love in contem
pl ation (eros). This life of love, according to him, is the life of the saints such as Teresa of Calcutta and the Blessed Virgin Mary and is the direction Christians take when they believe that God loves them. Pope Francis taught that "True love is both loving and letting oneself be loved...what is important in love is not our loving, but allowing ourselves to be loved by God." That's just what Virgin Mary did. "You have heard that it was said, 'Love your neighbor and hate your enemy.' But I tell you, love your enemies and pray for those who persecute you, that you may be children of your Father in heaven. He causes his sun to rise on the evil and the good, and sends rain on the righteous and the unrighteous. If you love those who love you, what reward will you get? Are not even the tax collectors doing that? And if you greet only your own peo
pl e, what are you doing more than others? Do not even pagans do that? Be perfect, therefore, as your heavenly Father is perfect." – Matthew 5: 43–48. Jews didn't like tax collectors.
ellauri119.html on line 440: Love encompasses the Islamic view of life as universal brotherhood that ap
pl ies to all who hold faith. Amongst the 99 names of God (Allah), there is the name Al-Wadud, or "the Loving One," which is found in Surah [Quran 11:90] as well as Surah [Quran 85:14]. God is also referenced at the beginning of every chapter in the Qur'an as Ar-Rahman and Ar-Rahim, or the "Most Compassionate" and the "Most Merciful", indicating that nobody is more loving, compassionate and benevolent than God. The Qur'an refers to God as being "full of loving kindness." The Qur'an exhorts Muslim believers to treat all peo
pl e, viz. those who have not persecuted them, with birr or "deep kindness" as stated in Surah [Quran 6:8-9]. Birr is also used by the Qur'an in describing the love and kindness that children must show to their parents. Ishq, or divine love, is the emphasis of Sufism in the Islamic tradition. Practitioners of Sufism believe that love is a projection of the essence of God to the universe. God desires to recognize beauty, and as if one looks at a mirror to see oneself, God "looks" at himself within the dynamics of nature. Since everything is a reflection of God, the school of Sufism practices to see the beauty inside the apparently ugly sufist. Sufism is often referred to as the religion of love. God in Sufism is referred to in three main terms, which are the Lover, Loved, and Beloved, with the last of these terms being often seen in Sufi poetry.
ellauri119.html on line 442: In Hinduism, kāma is
pl easurable, sexual love, personified by the god Kamadeva. For many Hindu schools, it is the third end (Kama) in life. Kamadeva is often pictured holding a bow of sugar cane and an arrow of flowers; he may ride upon a great parakeet. The philosophical work Narada Bhakti Sutras, written by an unknown author (presumed to be Narada), distinguishes eleven forms of love. Kama Sutra has more. Gaudiya Vaishnavas who worship Krishna as the Supreme Personality of Godhead and the cause of all causes consider Love for Godhead (Prema) to act in two ways: sambhoga and vipralambha (union and separation), like Empedocles' love and strife, attraction and repulsion, in and out in ever faster succession. Radha is considered to be the internal potency of Krishna, and is the supreme lover of Godhead. Her exam
pl e of love is considered to be beyond the understanding of material realm as it surpasses any form of selfish love or lust that is visible in the material world. The reciprocal love between Radha (the supreme lover) and Krishna (God as the Supremely Loved) is the subject of many poetic compositions in India such as the Gita Govinda and Hari Bhakti Shuddhodhaya, and a lot of chanting, tinkling little bells and opening and closing of musical doors.
ellauri119.html on line 444: In Buddhism, Kāma Sutra is sensuous, sexual love. It is an obstacle on the path to enlightenment, since it is selfish. Karuṇā is compassion and mercy, which reduces the suffering of others. It is com
pl ementary opposite to wisdom and is necessary for enlightenment. Adveṣa and mettā are benevolent love. This love is unconditional and requires considerable self-acceptance. This is quite different from ordinary love, which is usually about attachment and sex and which rarely occurs without self-interest. Instead, Buddhism recommends detachment and unselfish interest in others' welfare. Gandhi could sleep naked with young sweetypies without penetrating them. Did he so much as get a boner? The story does not tell. Mrs Gandhi did not approve. They screeched to one another like a pair of seagulls. Wonder what the young sweetypies thought of it. Scary and frustrating at once I bet. Being perfectly in love with God or Krishna makes one perfectly free from material contamination and this is the ultimate way of salvation or liberation. In this tradition, salvation or liberation is considered inferior to love, and just an incidental by-product. Being absorbed in Love for God is considered to be the perfection of life.
ellauri119.html on line 446: The term "free love" has been used to describe a social movement that rejects marriage, which is seen as a form of social bondage. The Free Love movement's initial goal was to separate the state from sexual matters such as marriage, birth control, and adultery. It claimed that such issues were the concern of the peo
pl e involved, and no one else. Many peo
pl e in the early 19th century believed that marriage was an important aspect of life to "fulfill earthly human happiness." Middle-class Americans wanted the home to be a
pl ace of stability in an uncertain world. This mentality created a vision of strongly defined gender roles, which provoked the advancement of the free love movement as a contrast. The term "sex radical" has been used interchangeably with the term "free lover". By whatever name, advocates had two strong beliefs: opposition to the idea of forceful sexual activity in a relationship and advocacy for a woman to use her body in any way that she
pl eases. These are also beliefs of Feminism. As St. Augustine put it: love God and then do as you
pl ease.
ellauri119.html on line 448: BTW did Mary come? How many times? There are many different theories that attempt to ex
pl ain what love is, and what function it serves. It would be very difficult to ex
pl ain love to a hypothetical person who had not himself or herself experienced love or being loved. In fact, to such a person love would appear to be quite strange if not outright irrational behavior.
ellauri119.html on line 452: Among the prevailing types of theories that attempt to account for the existence of love there are: psychological theories, the vast majority of which consider love to be very healthy behavior; there are evolutionary theories that hold that love is part of the process of natural selection; there are spiritual theories that may, for instance consider love to be a gift from God; there are also theories that consider love to be an unex
pl ainable mystery, very much like a mystical experience. It feels like a sneeze. Setting aside Empedocles's view of Eros as the force binding the world together, the roots of the classical philosophy of love go back to Plato's Symposium.
ellauri119.html on line 454: Why set aside good old Empedocles anyway? He meant forces of attraction and repulsion, he got it just right 2My before Newton. Plato sucks, set him aside instead. The idea of two loves, one heavenly, one earthly is just bullshit. As Tristram Shandy's Uncle Tboy was informed over 2My later, "of these loves, according to Ficinus's comment on Valesius, the one is rational - the other is natural - the first...excites to the desire of philosophy and truth - the second, excites to desire, sim
pl y". Toby felt the former toward women and the latter for model trains. Plato's sublimation theory of love involved "mounting upwards...from one to two, and from two to all fair boys, and from fair boys to fair actions, and from fair actions to fair motions, until with fair motions he comes into the bottom of an absolute beauty". Sounds like Plato's own love history from horny gym boy to a dirty old geezer.
ellauri119.html on line 456:
Hippo of Augustine thought the holy ghost was the gluon that kept the other two quarks together, top and bottom, strange and charm, bad and good policeman. love is another attractive force, if you will. May the force be with you, but never underestimate the power of the dark side of the force. Under his eyes. May the lord open. "The dystopian drama has exceeded the natural lifespan of its story, as it
pl ows forward with nothing new to say, tinkling cymbals and sounding brass." "There came a point during the first episode where, for me, it became too much." Lisa Miller of The Cut wrote: "I have pressed mute and fast forward so often this season, I am forced to wonder: 'Why am I watching this'? It all feels so gratuitous, like a beating that never ends."
ellauri119.html on line 458: Aristotle by contrast
pl aced more emphasis on philia (friendship, affection) than on eros (love); and the dialectic of friendship and love would continue to be
pl ayed out into and through the Renaissance, with Cicero for the Latins pointing out that "it is love (amor) from which the word 'friendship' (amicitia) is derived" Meanwhile, Lucretius, building on the work of Epicurus, had both praised the role of Venus as "the guiding power of the universe", and criticised those who become "love-sick...life's best years squandered in sloth and debauchery".
ellauri119.html on line 460: Now a fast forward to French fries and scepticism. Alongside the passion for merging that marked Romantic love, a more sceptical French tradition can be traced from Stendhal onwards. Stendhal's theory of crystallization im
pl ied an imaginative readiness for love, which only needed a single trigger for the object to be imbued with every fantasised perfection. Proust went further, singling out absence, inaccessibility or jealousy as the necessary precipitants of love. Lacan would almost parody the tradition with his saying that "love is giving something you haven't got to someone who doesn't exist". A post-Lacanian like Luce Irigaray would then struggle to find room for love in a world that will "reduce the other to the same...emphasizing eroticism to the detriment of love, under the cover of sexual liberation".
ellauri119.html on line 462:
Luce Irigaray (born 3 May 1930) is a Belgian-born French feminist, philosopher, linguist, psycholinguist, psychoanalyst and cultural theorist who examined the uses and misuses of language in relation to women. Irigaray's first and most well known book, published in 1974, was
Speculum non matris sed aliae mulieris (1974), which analyzes the texts of Freud, Hegel, Plato, Aristotle, Descartes, and Kant through the lens of phallocentrism. Presently, she is active in the Women's Movements in both France and Italy. Eroticism (from the Greek ἔρως, eros—"desire") is a quality that causes sexual feelings, as well as a philosophical contem
pl ation concerning the aesthetics of sexual desire, sensuality, and romantic love. That quality may be found in any form of artwork, including painting, sculpture, photography, drama, film, music, or literature. It may also be found in advertising. The term may also refer to a state of sexual arousal or anticipation of such – an insistent sexual impulse, desire, or pattern of thoughts.
ellauri119.html on line 464: As the fat and ugly French novelist Honoré de Balzac stated, eroticism is dependent not just upon an individual's sexual morality, but also the culture and time in which an individual resides. Because eroticism is wholly dependent on the viewer's culture and personal tastes pertaining to what, exactly, defines the erotic, critics have often[how often?] confused eroticism with pornography, with the anti-pornography activist Andrea Dworkin saying, "Erotica is sim
pl y high-class pornography; better produced, better conceived, better executed, better packaged, designed for a better class of consumer." This confusion, as Lynn Hunt writes, "demonstrate the difficulty of drawing… a clear generic demarcation between the erotic and the pornographic": indeed arguably "the history of the separation of pornography from eroticism… remains to be written". In the eighteenth century, eroticism was the result of the intrusion into the public sphere of something that was at base private.
ellauri119.html on line 473: This article is written like a personal reflection, personal essay, or argumentative essay that states a Wikipedia editor's personal feelings or presents an original argument about a topic. Please help improve it by rewriting it in an encyclopedic style. (June 2018) (Learn how and when to remove this tem
pl ate message)
ellauri119.html on line 491: Companionate love is an intimate, non-passionate type of love that is stronger than friendship because of the element of long-term commitment. "This type of love is observed in long-term marriages where passion is no longer present" but where a deep affection and commitment remain. The love ideally shared between family members is a form of companionate love, as is the love between close friends who have a
pl atonic but strong friendship.
ellauri119.html on line 493: Fatuous love can be exem
pl ified by a whirlwind courtship and marriage—it has points of passion and commitment but no intimacy. An exam
pl e of this is "love at first sight".
ellauri119.html on line 495: Consummate love is the com
pl ete form of love, representing an ideal relationship which peo
pl e strive towards. Of the seven varieties of love, consummate love is theorized to be that love associated with the "perfect cou
pl e". According to Sternberg, these cou
pl es will continue to have great sex fifteen years or more into the relationship, they cannot imagine themselves happier over the long-term with anyone else, they overcome their few difficulties gracefully, and each delight in the relationship with one other.
ellauri119.html on line 504: The color wheel theory of love is an idea created by Canadian psychologist John Alan Lee that describes six styles of love, using several of the Latin and Greek words for love. First introduced in his book Colours of Love: An Ex
pl oration of the Ways of Loving (1973), Lee defines three primary, three secondary and nine tertiary love styles, describing them in terms of the traditional color wheel. The three primary types are eros, ludus and storge, and the three secondary types are mania, pragma and agape.
ellauri119.html on line 506: Exam
pl es of eros may be seen in movies including The Blue Lagoon, Return to the Blue Lagoon, Pretty Woman, Working Girl, and Girl with a Pearl Earring. Lee's recognizable traits:
ellauri119.html on line 518: Exam
pl es of ludus in movies include Dangerous Liaisons [Okay!], Cruel Intentions, and Kids. Ludic lovers want to have as much fun as possible. When they are not seeking a stable relationship, they rarely or never become overly involved with one partner and often can have more than one partner at a time, in other words a school of partners. They don't reveal their true thoughts and feelings to their partner(s), especially if they think they can gain some kind of advantage over their partner(s). The expectation may also be that the partner(s) should also be similarly minded. If a relationship materializes it will be about having fun and indulging in activities of varying degrees of learnedness together. This love style carries the likelihood of infidelity. In its most extreme form, ludic love can become sexual addiction. No Lee's recognizable traits.
ellauri119.html on line 522: Storge is the Greek term for familial love. For some reason, Lee chooses storge, rather than the term philia (the usual term for friendship) to describe this kind of love. Exam
pl es of storge can be seen in movies including Love & Basketball, When Harry Met Sally..., and Zack and Miri Make a Porno.
ellauri119.html on line 537: Manic lovers speak of their partners with possessives and superlatives, and they feel that they "need" their partners. This kind of love is expressed as a means of rescue, or a reinforcement of value. Manic lovers value finding a partner through chance without prior knowledge of their financial status, education, background, or personality traits. Insufficient expression of manic love by one's partner can cause one to perceive the partner as aloof, materialistic and detached. In excess, mania becomes obsession or codependency, and obsessed manic lovers can thus come across as being very possessive and jealous. One exam
pl e from real life can be found in the unfortunate case of John Hinckley, Jr., a mentally disturbed individual who attempted to assassinate the incumbent US President Ronald Reagan due to a delusion that this would prompt the actress Jodie Foster to finally reciprocate his obsessive love.
ellauri119.html on line 539: Extreme exam
pl es of mania in popular culture include yandere anime and manga characters. Additionally, manic love is a central theme in the films Endless Love, Fatal Attraction, Misery, Play Misty for Me, Swimfan, and Taxi Driver.
ellauri119.html on line 555: Exam
pl es of pragma can be found in books, movies, and TV including Ordinary Peo
pl e, Pride and Prejudice (Charlotte), Little Women (Amy March and Fred Vaughn) and House of Cards (Frank and Claire Underwood). Political marriages are also considered to be exam
pl es of pragmatic love. Lee's recognizable traits:
ellauri119.html on line 573: Exam
pl es of agape can be found in books and movies including The Gift of the Magi by O. Henry, Penelope in Homer's Odyssey, The Mission, Somewhere in Time, Titanic, Untamed Heart, Forrest Gump, and the Bible [specify which].
ellauri119.html on line 576: Attracted to several types of peo
pl e
ellauri119.html on line 578: Meets peo
pl e easily so most likely will begin with a stranger
ellauri119.html on line 589: Biological models of love tend to see it as a mammalian drive, similar to hunger or thirst, or sneezing. Psychology sees love as more of a social and cultural phenomenon. Certainly, love is influenced by hormones (such as oxytocin), neurotrophins (such as NGF), and pheromones, and how peo
pl e think and behave in love is influenced by their conceptions of love. The conventional view in biology is that there are two major drives in love: sexual attraction and attachment. Attachment between adults is presumed to work on the same princi
pl es that lead an infant to become attached to its mother. The traditional psychological view sees love as being a combination of companionate love and passionate love. Passionate love is intense longing, and is often accompanied by physiological arousal (shortness of breath, rapid heart rate); companionate love is affection and a feeling of intimacy not accompanied by physiological arousal.
ellauri119.html on line 591: The philosophy of love is a pretty listless field of social philosophy and ethics that attempts to ex
pl ain the nature of love. The philosophical investigation of love includes the tasks of distinguishing between the various kinds of personal love, asking if and how love is or can be justified, asking what the value of love is, and what impact love has on the autonomy of both the lover and the beloved. Boooooring. Makes you yawn.
ellauri119.html on line 594:
Why do peopl e follow the terrible Ayn Rand?
ellauri119.html on line 596:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri119.html on line 602: Daughter of Zelman Wolf Rosenbaum and Anna Borisovna (Ka
pl an) Rosenbaum
ellauri119.html on line 609: Daughter of Zelman Wolf Zakharovich Rosenbaum and Khana Berkovna Ka
pl an
ellauri119.html on line 614: Ayn Rand was a Russian-American novelist, philosopher,
pl aywright, and screenwriter.
ellauri119.html on line 615: Alisa Zinov'yevna Rosenbaum was born 2 February 1905 in Saint Petersburg, Russian Empire to Zinovy Zakharovich "Fronz" Rosenbaum and Anna Borisovna nee Ka
pl an, one of three daughters in the Jewish household. Her father, Fronz, was a pharmacist.
ellauri119.html on line 627: On their marriage record, Ayn's parents are listed as Fronz Rosenbaum and Anna Ka
pl an, and Frank's parents are listed as Dennis O'Connor and Mary Cecil. Despite multi
pl e attempts, she was never able to help her family emigrate to the United States. Or maybe they'd just rather not.
ellauri119.html on line 629: The 1930 US Census has the O'Connors living in Los Angeles, California in the Moraine Apartments, on 823 North Gower Street. They were renting the
pl ace for $52 a month. They are both listed as working as actors in motion pictures. Ayn, listed here as Alice, gives her native language as Russian.
ellauri119.html on line 631: In 1932, Ayn's writing career finally started gaining momentum with her works, "Red Pawn" and "Night of January 16th". Her first novel, "We the Living" was com
pl eted in 1934, but wasn't published until 1936.
ellauri119.html on line 633: Ayn and Frank were living in an apartment at 160 89th St, Manhattan, New York in 1940. Their rent was $105 a month. Frank is working as a theatrical actor and by this time, Ayn is calling herself a writer, both for novels and
pl ays. Frank showed no income the previous year, while Ayn had made $3000.
ellauri119.html on line 637: She started writing her best-known novel, "The Fountainhead" in 1935, and would be published after multi
pl e publisher rejections, in 1943. Ayn would go on to write a screen
pl ay based on the novel, and then work on one of her other well-known novels, "Atlas Shrugged", which focused largely on her version of Objectivism, and would be published in 1957. She would spend her life discussing, lecturing, and writing about her philosophy.
ellauri119.html on line 646: Rosenbaum left Russia at the tail end of the Trust program. She was assisted by bolshevik Hollywood. Like a typical crypto-jew and communist she used a pseudonym. She became, together with Leo Strauss, a leading philosopher of the Trotskyites. She, like Strauss, helped create the philosophy of arrogance and entitlement that justifies the lies of government leaders to the peo
pl e. Her philosophies misrepresent the realities of how wealth and psychopathic greed cou
pl ed with immorality destroys civilization. Her solution to class warfare is group disloyalty of the rich to society and the ex
pl oitation of the national resources by a privileged class to destroy the economy and sabotage the nation. She misrepresented American tradition in a way that benefitted our enemies and internationalized our national resources leaving them easy pickings for the ex
pl oitation of unregulated international markets. She advocated the ruinous gold standard which allows our enemies the opportunity to deflate our money sup
pl y and strangle the economy at their whim. By sim
pl y hoarding gold and/or sending it out of the nation the bankers can ruin us under a gold standard. Her philosophy falsely claims that the market can and will correct the actions of the enemy within to ruin the nation by their designs. She wanted to grant the enemy the right to act with impunity and free rein as a Trojan horse within America to com
pl etely destroy our nation, and she has nearly succeeded. The removal of the ability of government to impose with force the collective will of the nation inevitably leads to balkanization, and that was well known and desired by our bolshevik enemies, Rosenbaum’s masters. She never pointed out the name and the nature of the enemy, instead scapegoating the poor and the communists for what international jewry was doing, with her as one of its leading members. As far as I know, she NEVER addressed the existential danger of jewish messianic prophecy and the subversion of the American government by Israel. Being herself a jew, she was disloyal to America in favor of Israel. She was disloyal to the American majority population in favor of the banking class. She did absolutely nothing that was ever in any way harmful to the communists or the bankers, who have so harmed America.
ellauri119.html on line 656: I recall reading her claim that the Founding Fathers ex
pl icitly rejected only one form of government - Democracy! Democracy!? Really?, I thought. There is no way that could be true. But reading the Federalist Papers, there it was.
ellauri119.html on line 660: This and other exam
pl es convinced me that her ideas ap
pl ied directly to larger societal issues.
ellauri119.html on line 674: Too many are introduced to Objectivism through its ap
pl ication to politics. Political conclusions reached by ap
pl ying Objectivism are counter to the popular notions of how government should work and society should be structured . Without an understanding of the foundation and underpinnings, it is difficult to understand how Objectivist ideals ap
pl y.
ellauri119.html on line 676: But Objectivism is mostly a philosophy for improving yourself. The great thing is that it is practical. The more you ap
pl y it to your life and the more consistently you practice it, the better your life becomes. And it is also very difficult to practice constipated. That is why I continue to study and learn.
ellauri119.html on line 680: From a literary point of view her novels have little character development and are cast in black and white terms. The important things in this world are just not that easy to discern, so she is painting a child´s sim
pl e view of the world, perhaps even an autistic child´s view, who doesn´t have the capability of caring for others. Ayn Rand found early inspiration for her protagonists in a 1920´s serial killer, William Hickman and used that sociopath as the model for the heros of her novels. See: Ayn Rand, Hugely Popular Author and Inspiration to Right-Wing Leaders, Was a Big Admirer of Serial Killer
ellauri119.html on line 684: She is good at writing a thriller novel and carries a hypnotic theme that keeps the reader absorbed and lends to a subtle brainwashing/indoctrination toward her worldview. That doesn´t make it right, just believable, and, unfortunately, too many peo
pl e think that believable means it is true. Believable just means that you can be fooled.
ellauri119.html on line 688: From a philosophical viewpoint, Ayn Rand´s objectivism is an inconsistent pile of faulty axioms and absurd conclusions. Her tautological A = A and her invalid claim that all thought is verbal have been shown, long ago, to be either useless information or demonstrably false. Wittgenstein dismissed tautologies as telling us anything new about the world before Rand came to the USA and phenomenology had dismissed a verbal mentalese grammar of the brain. Noam Chomsky´s innate grammar is only true for words, but thoughts are far more than just words since all thought appears to be motor based. What you might need is a grammar of the body instead. Thoughts seem to be closer to the movements of an athlete than to the words in a sentence. For some reason most peo
pl e ignore that all speech is base on wagging the tongue, and the vibrations in middle ear and cochlea, a motor based capability that we have learned to use to communicate with. Is there an isomorphism between the movement of the tongue and those of sign language that would show a fundamental grammar shared by both?
ellauri119.html on line 692: In terms of economics, if you ran a country on the economics that Rand demanded, you would have the population in arms with a revolution at your door in less than a year. Her system would parallel that of the mangagement of the West Virginia Coal Mine that just had the worst mining accident and deaths since the 1970s. Rand´s system was what some peo
pl e call an oligarchy, to which I would add a very paranoid sociopathic oligarchy.
ellauri119.html on line 698: The im
pl ication being that that anyone who disagrees with you is not a “man of the intellect”? That’s just a shitty religion-variety argument. “You can’t feel God because you don’t have enough faith.”
ellauri119.html on line 700: Rand is a economic libertarian who thought selfishness is a virtue. Rational peo
pl e sim
pl y reject Rand’s economic libertarianism because rational peo
pl e understand that laissez-faire capitalism results in the concentration of wealth in the hands of those who are good at being selfish.
ellauri119.html on line 702: Rational peo
pl e are utilitarians who want government to produce the greatest good for the greatest number. Libertarians like Rand want the greatest good for me and the public be damned.
ellauri119.html on line 707: Rand sim
pl y does not understand that Darwinian fitness refers to reproductive success, not economic success. Poor peo
pl e with high birth rates are more fit than wealthy peo
pl e with low birth rates.
ellauri119.html on line 714: Your claims against Ayn Rand don’t stand up to scrutiny, though. She never advocated Social Darwinism, either ex
pl icitly or im
pl icitly. In my readings, I have read quotes where she damned a CEO who uses only a tenth of his ability and praised a janitor who strive to improve himself.
ellauri119.html on line 716: Atlas Shrugged offers several exam
pl es that also refute this common misconception. The villains in this novel are businessmen who try to succeed through political pull. While they are businessmen, supposedly Ayn Rand’s ideal person, she does not paint them in a flattering light. She demonstrates how evil they are and how their political maneuvering always leads to their failure.
ellauri119.html on line 726: Rand was an economic libertarian. She thinks there should be no interference in the free market. Since the free market produces wealth inequality, you must come up with an ex
pl anation for the existence of socio-economic classes. Social Darwinists argue that the rich are rich because they are more fit than the poor who are less fit because they are dependent on the government.
ellauri119.html on line 728: Rand’s philosophy of selfishness is a virtue only works if you ap
pl y Social Darwinist ideas to justify a free market where the peo
pl e with the most money are sim
pl y very good at being selfish.
ellauri119.html on line 740: “[The rich] consume little more than the poor, and in spite of their natural selfishness and rapacity…they divide with the poor the produce of all their improvements. They are led by an invisible hand to make nearly the same distribution of the necessaries of life, which would have been made, had the earth been divided into equal portions among all its inhabitants, and thus without intending it, without knowing it, advance the interest of the society, and afford means to the multi
pl ication of the species.”
ellauri119.html on line 746: Dagny saved a bum from being thrown off from her OWN train. She is responsible for policies and rules of her own train, which her em
pl oyees follow word for word. She’s basically saving a bum from herself. Also, if she were to act as her philosophy dictates, then it would be in her self-interest to throw the bum of her train. By saving the bum, she’s a hypocrite of her own philosophy.
ellauri119.html on line 748: Hank is not acting in his self interest when he helps a small manufacturer. Again, this is an another exam
pl e against her philosophy of ethical egoism.
ellauri119.html on line 750: Then again, Ayn used “ought” which im
pl ies a great deal of subjectivity. That is why her philosophy is extremely flawed. The best philosophies are specific and literal, and they should leave no room for interpretation.
ellauri119.html on line 755:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri119.html on line 758:
Alisa is right that an existential sentence is in principl e easier to prove than its negative. Just produce a specimen. I bet she filched it from Karl Popper. The negation takes another universal premise to prove it from. But God is a harder nut. If God supporters could produce the specimen, they'd still need to prove uniqueness and the requisite universal properties. God opposers try to argue they do not need that hypothesis. Thing is the supporters clearly feel that need. It's not logic, it's a eusocial insect's builtin circuit. Less stupid egomaniacs are aware of its usefulness as a mind numbing anesthesiac, opium for the masses. Fiction or fact, its a great hypothesis. It would deserve inventing if it did not come pre-installed. Alisa was a silly hag.
ellauri119.html on line 762: In 1964, I met both Nathaniel Branden and Ayn Rand at a conference in a Washington DC hotel. About 75 peopl e attended. Both Branden and Rand spoke. Ayn answered a few questions written on 3 X 5 cards submitted by audience members.
ellauri119.html on line 770: Some weeks after the seminar I received an awkward form-letter from Branden to expl ain that he had severed his relationship with Ayn because she was unable to accept that he was not attracted to her. Since they shared identical values, she believed it was not possible that he didn't love her.
ellauri119.html on line 772: ploads/2014/10/Ayn-Rand-1981.jpg" />
ellauri119.html on line 775: Asked what she thought of Reagan, Ayn Rand repl ied, “I don’t think of him. And the more I see, the less I think of him.” For Rand, “the appalling part of his administration was his connection with the so-called ‘Moral Majority’ and sundry other TV religionists, who are struggling, apparently with his approval, to take us back to the Middle Ages via the unconstitutional union of religion and politics.” Rand’s primary concern, it seems, is that this “unconstitutional union” represented a “threat to capitalism.” While she admired Reagan’s appeal to an “inspirational element” in American politics, “he will not find it,” remarked Rand, “in the God, family, tradition swamp.” Instead, she proclaims, we should be inspired by “the most typical American group… the businessmen.”
ellauri131.html on line 28:
Halusin tallettaa sen hetken play:none">Valemuistoja
ellauri131.html on line 41:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri131.html on line 243:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/14/Liisa-Jussi-Tenkku-1939.jpg/500px-Liisa-Jussi-Tenkku-1939.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri131.html on line 271:
ploads/2017/12/03164137/Kari-Rydman-Niin-Kaunis-yallemedia.com-chord-progression.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri131.html on line 289:
Jack Canafield (born August 19, 1944) is an American author, motivational speaker (!), corporate trainer, and entrepreneur. He is the co-author of the Chicken Coop for the Soul series, which has more than 250 titles and 500 million copies in print in over 40 languages. In 2005 Canafield co-authored The Success Princi
pl es: How to Get From Where You Are to Where You Were.
ellauri131.html on line 365: There are Chicken Coops for the Adopted Soul, the African American Soul, the African American Woman's Soul, the Soul of America, the American Idol Soul, the Angels Among Us, Angels and Miracles, Answered Prayers, Baseball Fans, the Best You Can Be, The Beach Lovers, Best Mom in Law Ever, Miracles, the Breast Cancer Survivors, Brides, Cancer Victims, Caregivers, Cartoon Dads, Video Moms, Cartoon Teachers, The Cat Did What?? the Cat Lovers, Cat & Dog Lovers, Celeb Cats and the Peo
pl e Who Love Them, Jack Canafield, Celeb Mothers, Jack Canafield, Celeb Sisters, Jack Canafield, Celeb Teachers, Jack Canafield, Celeb Brothers and Sisters, Jack Canafield, Celeb Mothers and Daughters, Jack Canafield, Celeb Peo
pl e Who Make a Difference, Jack Canafield, the Child's Soul, Jack Canafield, Children with Special Needs, Jack Canafield, the Soul in the Classroom – High School Edition, Jack Canafield and Anna Unknown, the Coffee Lovers Chicken Soup for the Soul Cookbook, Includes material by Gibbons.
ellauri131.html on line 366: the Coo
pl e's Soul, Jack Canafield, the Country Soul, the Country Soul Music, the College Soul, Jack Canafield, the Canadian Soul, the Chiropractic Soul, the Christian Family Soul, Jack Canafield, and Nancy Autio (2000), Chicken Coop for the Christian Teenage Soul, Jack Canafield, Mark Victor Hansen, Kimberly Kirberger, Patty Aubery and Nancy Mitchell-Autio, the Christian Sole, the Christian Sole 2, the Christian Woman's Hole, Christmas Sole, Christmas in Canada, Christmas Magic, Christmas Treasury, Christmas Treasury for Kids, Healthy Living Series: Weight Loss, where Jack combines inspirational stories with medical advice. The Cat-and-Dog Lovers, Count Your Blessings, Create Your Second Best Future, The Mating Game, the Dental Bowl, The Rental Hole, Dieter's Soul, Divorce and Recovery Soul, where Jack combines inspirational stories with legal advice. The Dog Did What? Same as The Cat? The Dog Lovers' Dreams and Premonitions, Chicken Coop for the Entrepreneur's Black Soul, Jack Canafield, for the Empty Hesters, for Every Mom's Horny Son, for the Expectant Mother, Family Matters, Father's Cock, Father and Daughter videos, Father and Son's Holey Camp, Find Your Happiness, Find Your Inner Strength, Find your Arse with both hands, Finding My Faith, Fisherman's Friend, Jack Canafield,
ellauri131.html on line 368: In the Teenage Hole IV, Huge Pole in a Teenage Hole w/out "French Letters", the Teenage Hole Personal Organizer, Get Teenage Hole on Love & Friendship, Get Teenage Hole on Tough Stuff, the Teenage Hole: The Real Deal Challenges, Jack Canafield, the Teenage Hole: The Real Deal Friends, the Teenage Hole: The Real Deal School, Teenage Hole: Think Positive, Thanks Mom, Thanks to My Mom. Think Positive. Think Possible. Think Positive about Kids. Think Possible about Kids. Time to Jive. Teenage Hole Touched By a Business Angel, Tough Times Tough Peo
pl e, Traveling salesmen, A Tribute to Home Moms, True Love on The Doormat, Unlocking the Secrets to Living In Your Dreams, Snake Oil for the Unsinkable Soul, for the Veterans, for the Volunteers Foul, Volunteering and Giving Paw, that's what I Learned From The Dog, for the Writer's Block, for the Woman's Hole, to Inspire a Woman's Hole #1, New York Times Bestseller, A Second Round at the Woman's Hole, Woman into Woman, the Woman Golfer's Hole, the Hole at Work, Working at The Woman's Hole, Wife Lessons For MILF Women, Culo de Pollo para el Alma de los Padres, – in Spanish.
ellauri131.html on line 373:
ploads/2018/07/Marianne-Power-author-london-stock-wall.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri131.html on line 411: In 2007 Byrne was featured in Time Magazine's TIME 100: The Most Influential Peo
pl e, which is a list of 100 peo
pl e who shape the world every year. Since 2010, she has been featured in Watkins Mind Body Spirit magazine's annual list of The 100 Most Spiritually Influential Living Peo
pl e. She gained mainstream popularity and commercial success after appearing on The Oprah Winfrey Show.
ellauri131.html on line 413: Läski Oprah on takuulla samalla listalla vielä korkeammalla sijalla. Rhondalla on nettisivut Tuvalulla. Sillä on epäilyttävän vino suu. Sellaiset ihmiset on epäluotettavia. Jos miljoonat ihmiset on tulleet tästä miljonääreixi, riittääkö hän meille muille enää mitään? Puhumattakaan miljardeista: Billions of peo
pl e have already experienced The Secret manifested in their lives. No eihän tässä mitään oikeastaan luvata. Niinkuin Susannan seinällä luki: jos jokin menee päin vittua, se on kokemusta.
ellauri131.html on line 429: Pip's father gave him a
pl ate that had hot chapatti that was full of ghee!
ellauri131.html on line 433: Fatty's dog Buster got to lick Fattys
pl ate!
ellauri131.html on line 488: Njaa, kyllä oma hieroja, terapeutti ja peetee
pl us komee könsikäs uima-altaassa vois siinä jelppiä. Sais latinkia päähän ellei toiseenkin.
ellauri131.html on line 588: Manifestointimenetelmissä korostetaan, että universumilta pitää pyytää konkreettisia asioita. Ei siis mitään sellaista epämääräistä, että ”haluaisin olla rikkaampi”, vaan ennemminkin sellaista, että katsoo Chanelin nettisivuilta, millaisen laukun haluaa ja sitten näkee itsensä flaneeraamassa Es
pl anadilla juuri kyseinen laukku käsitaipeessa.
ellauri131.html on line 602: Suomessahan on nähty jo vuosien ajan, miten ihmisiä voi vetää hö
pl ästä.
ellauri131.html on line 644: Tony Robbins is giant man who's had an equally huge impression on the millions of peo
pl e he's helped over the years. His empire includes books, motivational seminars, and the ownership of multi
pl e companies "which combined take in $5 billion annually," according to Vulture, but this self-help guru's reputation has come under fire — literally and figuratively.
ellauri131.html on line 646: In June 2016, CNN reported that 30 peo
pl e were burned during a "fire walk" at Robbins' "Unleash the Power Within" seminar in Dallas. in 2012, another Robbins "fire walk" in San Jose resulted in 20 peo
pl e sustaining "second-and third-degree burns." Robbins' camp basically shrugged off the reports, saying, "It's not uncommon to have fewer than 1% of participants experience 'hot spots,' which is similar to a sunburn that can be treated with aloe."
ellauri131.html on line 647: According to 911 calls released by TMZ, attendees had "very bad burns," prompting concern that additional units would need to be dispatched. Following the event, multi
pl e reports speculated that firewalkers may have put themselves in danger by pausing to take selfies during the rite of passage.
ellauri131.html on line 653: He left what he described to Fortune as an abusive home life when he was 17 years old, became a janitor and dropped out of college. He met motivational speaker Jim Rohn, who served as a mentor to Robbins — and the rest is his story. Robbins went on to eclipse his own mentor and become one of the
pl anet's most in-demand life coaches. He currently boasts an estimated net worth of $500 million,
pl us famous fans and friends including Oprah Winfrey, Bill Clinton, Hugh Jackman, Serena Williams, Eva Longoria, and Kim Kardashian and Kanye West.
ellauri131.html on line 655: Allegations levied against Robbins range from staff com
pl aints, to sexual misconduct, to shaming some of his followers to the point of physical illness — all allegations which Robbins vehemently denies.
ellauri131.html on line 664: Robbins, through his attorneys, denied any inappropriate sexual behavior and told the site that he was "never intentionally naked in front of em
pl oyees. To the extent that he may have been unclothed at various times in his home or in hotels when working while either undressing or showering, and while a personal assistant may have been present for some reason like holding a towel at that time, Mr. Robbins has no decollete."
ellauri131.html on line 666: "The security guys could tell stories about women they'd had to take up to his room." A former bodyguard corroborated the allegations and said he'd witnessed Robbins make passes at women in his crowds. In a second report from June, two women told BuzzFly News about encounters they had with Robbins: One woman said he
pl aced her hand on his crotch and touched her breast (or was it the other way round?), while another alleged that he kissed her, hugged her and touched her breast."
ellauri131.html on line 677: Celebrity scientist Bill Nye told The Chicken Wrap in 2017 that sim
pl e physics makes walking on burning coals actually not too difficult. Citing another physicist, the celeb ex
pl ained, "the foot is almost never in contact long enough to induc
ellauri131.html on line 680: He rerevels in saying The "n" word. "'As long as someone calls you a nigger and gets that kind of response from you I've seen right now, where you're ready to ex
pl ode, then what you've done is given that person absolute control of you. You have no control in your life. You are still a goddam nigger and a slave. Now go get me a smoothie boy."
ellauri131.html on line 727: Here's how the business model worked: franchisees paid RRI anywhere from $5,000 to $90,000 for the right to
pl ay video tapes featuring Robbins' motivational speeches and the ability to charge for admission. According to the FTC, Robbins' company claimed that franchisees "could sell 25 to 100 seminars per month and could earn between $75,000 to $300,000 per year."
ellauri131.html on line 728: The reality: even in 1995, peo
pl e didn't want to pay Robbins' prices to watch Robbins talking.
ellauri131.html on line 734:
Bikram Choudhury is the yoga instructor who became a guru after the ex
pl osion in popularity of his eponymous form of hot yoga, which "consists of a series of 26 poses, done over 90 minutes in a room heated to 104 degrees," according to The LA Times. He has also become a celebrity darling, having instructed stars like "Madonna, George Clooney, Brooke Shields and Jennifer Aniston," according to Peo
pl e.
ellauri131.html on line 742: Evolutionary biologist Jerry Coyne issued a similar takedown, by sim
pl y highlighting some of Chopra's more outlandish claims, including his idea that the moon only exists because of human consciousness, the suggestion that mass prayer or meditation has the ability to "simmer down the turbulence in nature," as well as the nonsensical statement "Consciousness is the driver of evolution. Every time I eat your pussy or you suck my banana it transforms into a human." Coyne labels Chopra's ideas as "pseudoscience, pure and sim
pl e," and accuses him of "pushing a noxious brew of quantum physics, evolutionary biology, and "universal consciousness.'" Ouch.
ellauri131.html on line 744: Canadian prime minister
Kevin Trudeau earned untold millions through his "They Don't Want You To Know About" series of infomercials touting his supposed secret knowledge of natural cures, debt relief, and weight loss techniques. And though he earned the allegiance of many followers who believed his claims, a federal jury found him guilty of criminal contempt in 2013, for "lying in several infomercials about the contents of his hit book, The Weight Loss Cure 'They' Don't Want You to Know About," according to The Chicago Tribune. Trudeau repeatedly touted the methods in the book as "easy," except unwitting customers didn't find out until they
pl unked down cash that it involved "prolonged periods of extreme calorie restriction, off-label skin-syringe injections and high-colonic enemas personally administered by Mr. Trudeau," according to ABC News.
ellauri131.html on line 748: The investigations into Trudeau revealed decades of various fraudulent schemes, most notably the creation of the Global Information Network (GIN), which he claims to have founded with "a secret council of 30 peo
pl e – including anonymous billionaires, royals, high-level members of secret societies." Oh yeah, it just gets crazier and crazier with this guy. He didn't just disappoint. He turned out to be one of the biggest scam artists of our time.
ellauri131.html on line 760: Speaking to News.com.au in 2016, Morrissey was asked whether he ever regretted previous derogatory comments he'd made about the royal family. It's fair to say that the answer was no. "I don't know anyone who likes the Boil Family," he re
pl ied. "Monarchy represents an unequal and inequitable social system. There is no such thing as a royal person. You either buy into the silliness or else you are intelligent enough to realize that it is all human greed and arrogance."
ellauri131.html on line 761: The often-problematic ex-frontman of The Smiths then took aim at one royal, in particular: "Harry killed 34 peo
pl e in Afghanistan and the UK press called him a hero. If he ate 34 poor peo
pl e in Haiti the UK press would still call him a hero. It is insufferable." Speaking to reporters in 2013 (via Reuters), the prince admitted to killing insurgents. "Yeah, so, lots of peo
pl e have," he said. "Yes, we fire when we have to, take a life to save a life, but essentially we're more of a detergent than anything else. We remove dirty lives and beget whiter ones."
ellauri131.html on line 840: Okei, Tony olet kauhistus. Eikä se kuumajoogepelle ole paljon parempi. Toisin Doreen! Se on tehnyt parannuxen. Doreen has renounced her previous work, and she prays for the day when other peo
pl e will stop selling her old products. If she was self-published, the old products would have been taken off the market immediately. Unfortunately, other companies have licenses to the old products and they continue to sell them. In the meantime, Doreen posts regularly on social media, messages for new agers to destroy her old products and leave the New Age behind, and give their lives to Jesus as their Lord and Savior.
ellauri131.html on line 842: Her video is from https://www.watchagtv.com/ a new Christian streaming television, movie, and documentary station, and was filmed at Pastor Alistair Begg’s office. To listen to Pastor Begg’s sermons,
pl ease visit https://www.truthforlife.org/. You can download the free Truth for Life app and the American Gospel TV (AGTV) app to watch on your mobile devices. Ilmeisesti Begg on vielä Doreenia taitavampi sumuttaja, kun pystyi viemään Doreenilta virtuen.
ellauri131.html on line 846: Jokaisella on vähintään 2 suojelusenkeliä, kuten Aku Ankalla. Ne on jumalan sanansaattajia. Niihin voi uskoa vaikkei ole uskonnollinen. Arkkienkelit on siivekkäiden nilkkejä. Niitä on 15k
pl . Mikael auttaa sähköhommissa ja löytämään elämän tarkoituxen. Mitä vittua!? Jotkut enkeleistä on hevosia ja marsuja. Mitä vittua!!?
ellauri131.html on line 857: ilmastoahistuxesta. Esim tää "Cassidy" niminen
pl okkeri (vittu näitä nimiå):
ellauri131.html on line 863: I think that is because, over the past decade or so, peo
pl e have become far more aware of the concept of privilege. Which roughly translates to: “no I don’t want to read about all the problems a middle-class straight, white women with a good job has, no thank you”. It feels whiny, flat, tone-deaf. Marianne Power chases self-help like the world is falling apart and her life is in tatters, but the main source of her problems?
ellauri131.html on line 871: Well, that was infuriating. I was hoping for a cynical, or at the very least critical, approach to classic self-help tropes. What I got was and endless description of one woman's mental breakdown and her com
pl ete lack of healthy coping strategies. There is nothing remotely funny or insightful about this book and Marianne Power's obsession with her first world problems feels extremely tone-deaf.
ellauri131.html on line 888: Meitä kaikkia pelottaa ettemme kelpaa, sanoo Tony Robbins. Ja syystäkin. Kukaan ei rakasta minua. Sitä tiukkasi Pirkko Hiekkalakin Carl-Erik Carlsonilta vähän väliä. Viallisuuden tunne ei ole kenenkään yxilöllinen ongelma, komppaa Ekkehart Tollekin. Tällä
pl aneetalla on viallisia apinoita miljardeja. Ne tuntee häpeää.
ellauri131.html on line 900: Hay recounted her life story in an interview with Mark Oppenheimer of The New York Times in May 2008. In it, Hay stated that she was born in Los Angeles to a poor mother who remarried Louise's violent stepfather, Ernest Carl Wanzenreid (1903–1992), who physically abused her and her mother. When she was about 5, she was raped by a neighbor. At 15, she dropped out of University High School in Los Angeles without a di
pl oma, became pregnant and, on her 16th birthday, gave up her newborn baby girl for adoption.
ellauri131.html on line 902: She then moved to Chicago, where she worked in low-paying jobs. In 1950, she moved on again, to New York. At this point she changed her first name, and began a career as a fashion model. She achieved success, working for Bill Blass, Oleg Cassini, and Pauline Trigère. In 1954, she married the English businessman Andrew Hay (1928–2001); after 14 years of marriage, she felt devastated when he left her for another woman, Sharman Douglas (1928–1996). Hay said that about this time she found the First Church of Religious Science on 48th Street, which taught her the transformative power of thought. Hay revealed that here she studied the New Thought works of authors such as Florence Scovel Shinn who believed that positive thinking could change peo
pl e's material circumstances, and the Religious Science founder Ernest Holmes who taught that positive thinking could heal the body.
ellauri131.html on line 904: By Hay's account, in the early 1970s she became a religious science practitioner. In this role she led peo
pl e in spoken affirmations, which she believes would cure their illnesses, and became popular as a workshop leader. She also recalled how she had studied Transcendental Meditation with the Maharishi Mahesh Yogi at the Maharishi International University in Fairfield, Iowa.
ellauri131.html on line 906: Hay described how in 1977 or 1978 she was diagnosed with "incurable" cervical cancer, and how she came to the conclusion that by holding on to her resentment for her childhood abuse and rape she had contributed to its onset. She reported how she had refused conventional medical treatment, and began a regime of forgiveness, cou
pl ed with therapy, nutrition, reflexology, and occasional colonic enemas. She claimed in the interview that she rid herself of the cancer by this method, but, while swearing to its truth, admitted that she had outlived every doctor who could confirm this story.
ellauri131.html on line 910: Around the same time she began leading support groups for peo
pl e living with HIV/AIDS, which she called "Hay Rides". These grew from a few peo
pl e in her living room to hundreds of men in a large hall in West Hollywood, California. Her work with AIDS patients drew fame and she was invited to appear on The Oprah Winfrey Show and The Phil Donahue Show in the same week, in March 1988. Following this, You Can Heal Your Life immediately landed on the New York Times bestseller list. More than 50 million copies sold around the world in over 30 languages and it also has been made into a movie. You Can Heal Your Life is also included in the book 50 Self-Help Classics for being significant in its field. It is often described as a part of the New Age movement.
ellauri131.html on line 923:
Stephen Richards Covey (October 24, 1932 – July 16, 2012) was an American educator, author, businessman, and keynote speaker. His most popular book is
The 7 Habits of Highly Effective Peopl e. Tapsan 7 asukokonaisuutta hyvin tehokkaille tyypeille on on self helpin Sota ja Rauha, lukee Marianne Teholla.
ellauri131.html on line 925: In 1996, Time magazine named him one of the 25 most influential peo
pl e.
ellauri131.html on line 933: That kind of enthusiasm is, to some observers of organizational behavior, appalling. The problem, they say, lies in the message that is being subsidized by management: that individual workers are responsible for their own destinies, and that the way to achieve security and serenity is through continual self-improvement. For a big corporation that is mowing down whole suitefuls of middle managers, critics say, this can be a handy way to get em
pl oyees to start thinking that if they are laid off, the fault lies somewhere in themselves. "If the individual worker is made to feel the responsibility for his or her condition, the social contract is no longer there.
ellauri131.html on line 934: You're setting up the psychological conditions for peo
pl e to accept just-in-time em
pl oyment. Karl Marx 100 years ago -- if we can use his name in your publication -- did set up the idea of the reserve army of the unem
pl oyed."
ellauri131.html on line 936: Stephen Covey's Seven Habits of Highly Effective Peo
pl e, briefly, are these: (1) Be proactive. Take the initiative and be responsible. (2) Begin with the end in mind. Start any endeavor -- a meeting, a day at the office, your adult life -- with a mental image of an outcome conforming to values you cherish. (3) Put first things first. Disci
pl ine yourself to subordinate feelings, impulses, and moods to your values. (4) Think win/win. Just as it sounds. (5) Seek first to understand, then to be understood. Listen with the intent to empathize, not with the intent to re
pl y. (6) Synergize. Create wholes that are greater than the sum of their parts. (7) Sharpen the saw. Take time to cultivate the four essential dimensions of your character: physical, mental, social/emotional, and spiritual.
ellauri131.html on line 938: Covey, more than most inspirational writers, is able to skate right up close to the border of the divine without alarming anyone. Dr. Stephen R. Covey, author of The Seven Habits of Highly Effective Peo
pl e, has lost his laser pointer once again and is practically jumping up off the stage to point to a giant chart projected on the wall of a conference room at the Westin Hotel in Seattle. He would be an imposing man if he were two inches taller.
ellauri131.html on line 940: Covey was raised on an egg farm outside Salt Lake City in a tight-knit Mormon family, and that, too,
pl ayed a part. "My parents were just constantly affirming me in everything that I did. Late at night I'd wake up and hear my mother talking over my bed, saying, 'You're going to do great on this test. You can do anything you want.'
ellauri131.html on line 944: Covey died from com
pl ications resulting from a bike accident at the Eastern Idaho Regional Medical Center in Idaho Falls, Idaho, on July 16, 2012, at the age of 79.
ellauri131.html on line 947: He believed that his morals are a natural laws, and that God, the Creator and Father of us all, is the source of them, and also the source of monkey conscience. I believe that to the degree peo
pl e live by this inspired conscience, they will grow to fulfill their natures; to the degree that they do not, they will not fly on the animal
pl ane." As Joseph Smith announced in 1844:
ellauri131.html on line 952: The topic of Covey's Brigham U Ph.D dissertation was the "success literature" of the United States since 1776. Covey found that during the republic's first 150 years, most of that kind of writing focused on issues of character, the archetype being the autobiography of Ben Franklin. But shortly after World War II, success became more a function of personality, of public image, of attitudes and behaviors, skills and techniques, that lubricate the processes of human interaction. He began to think about ways to get peo
pl e to stop cultivating superficial charm and return to character building.
ellauri131.html on line 954: Only three peo
pl e have objected to the intimate nature of his moral instruction -- two Germans and a Frenchman.
ellauri131.html on line 958: It's the American dream of life as a barn raising." Susan E. Henking, associate professor of religious studies at Hobart and William Smith Colleges, says, "It's serving to depoliticize, and it serves a certain kind of social-control function. I mean, if peo
pl e feel like they deserve it when they get fired, they won't think dee
pl y about what was really responsible."
ellauri131.html on line 960: And what of the true cynic's view, that the lesson of history is that bastards often prevail? That markets are in and of themselves rational, and sometimes emotional, but rarely ever moral? That an appropriate model for business is not an extended family but a poker game? The late genius John von Neumann was fascinated by poker, and his study of the choice making involved in the game led him to develop the foundations of game theory. Von Neumann was a peerless student of the princi
pl es of rational self-interest, and he was also an adviser to Presidents Truman and Eisenhower. When the Soviets showed signs of developing nuclear weapons, he recommended bombing them into oblivion. Game theory, he said, dictated it.
ellauri131.html on line 1074: Bientôt nous
pl ongerons dans les froides ténèbres ; Pian sukelletaan kylmään hämärään;
ellauri131.html on line 1081: Mon coeur ne sera
pl us qu’un bloc rouge et glacé. Mun sydän on kuin punainen jäzkipallero.
ellauri131.html on line 1083: L’échafaud qu’on bâtit n’a pas d’écho
pl us sourd. Mestauslava ei kalahda noin ontosti.
ellauri132.html on line 28:
How to Sell a Lot of Copies play:none">Luovaa kirjoittamista
ellauri132.html on line 50: Eckhart on vaikutusvaltaisimpia kristittyjä uus
pl atonikkoja, ja vaikka hän olikin dominikaanina periaatteessa uskollinen tomisti, hän kirjoitti paljon metafysiikasta ja hengellisestä psykologiasta mystiseen sävyyn. Monet saksalaiset filosofit, kuten G. W. F. Hegel ja Martin Heidegger, ovat saaneet vaikutteita hänen teoksistaan.
ellauri132.html on line 54: Als Jugendlicher trat Eckhart in den Orden der Dominikaner ein, in dem er später hohe Ämter erlangte. Sein Hauptanliegen war die Verbreitung von Grundsätzen für eine konsequent spirituelle Lebenspraxis im Alltag. Aufsehen erregten seine unkonventionellen, teils provozierend formulierten Aussagen und sein schroffer Widerspruch zu damals verbreiteten Überzeugungen. Umstritten war beispielsweise seine Aussage, der „Seelengrund“ sei nicht wie alles Geschöpfliche von Gott erschaffen, sondern göttlich und ungeschaffen. Im Seelengrund sei die Gottheit stets unmittelbar anwesend. Vielfach griff Eckhart Gedankengut der neu
pl atonischen Tradition auf. Oft wird er als Mystiker charakterisiert, in der Forschung ist die Angemessenheit dieser Bezeichnung allerdings umstritten.
ellauri132.html on line 62: Nach Eckharts Tod wurde das Verfahren fortgesetzt. Es endete mit der Verurteilung der 28 Sätze, die teils als häretisch, teils als häresieverdächtig eingestuft wurden. Wichtiger als die Berufung auf Autoritäten (Neu
pl atonismus, Augustinus, Moses Maimonides) ist für ihn (wie für seinen Namensvetter!) die auf Vernunft und Erfahrung gestützte Einsicht. Er hält seine Einsichten für universal gültig und will seinem Publikum den Nachvollzug auch anspruchsvoller Inhalte ermöglichen. (wie auch sein schwerverständlicher Namensvetter! "Solange der Mensch dieser Wahrheit nicht gleicht, solange wird er diese Rede nicht verstehen.") Als Prediger wendet er sich statt Latein in deutscher Sprache auch an Hörer oder Leser, die über wenig philosophische oder theologische Vorkenntnisse verfügen. (Wie sein Namensvetter, der seine Muttersprache verlässt und auf English prädiziert). Tervettä markkina-ajattelua: enemmän tyhmempiä ja rikkaampia kusetettavia.
ellauri132.html on line 96: Arvaa et tää ajatus lohduttaa Töllöä. Ei se varmaan mielellään kazo izeään peilistä. Se ei ole mikään narsisti. Ja tottahan se on, ollaan 70% vettä, hiiltä typpeä ja happea,
pl us hivenaineita. Niixi on jo alettu hajota.
ellauri132.html on line 124:
pl/media/products/f74be60cf1fe8cc322c27a3b3298e35b/images/ET.jpg?lm=1542270255" height=200px" />
ellauri132.html on line 131: "The book struck me as irredeemable poppycock. I was put off by the strained stateliness of Tolle's writing, as well as its nearly indecipherable turgidity ... jargon like "conditioned mind structures', "the one indwelling consciousness". What's more, the guy was stunningly grandiose. He referred to his book as a "transformational" device", and promised that, as you read, "shit takes
pl ace within you." I lay there rolling my eyes ..."
ellauri132.html on line 157: Der Philosoph Descartes glaubte in seiner berühmten Aussage: "Ich meine, also bin ich" die grundlegendste Wahrheit gefunden zu haben. Tatsächlich hatte er den grundlegendsten Fehler ausgesprochen: Denken mit Sein und Identität mit Denken gleichzusetzen. Der zwanghafte Denker, also fast jeder, lebt in einem Zustand scheinbarer Isolation, in einer wahnsinnig kom
pl exen Welt ständiger Probleme und Konflikte, einer Welt, die die wachsende Zers
pl itterung des Geistes widerspiegelt. Erleuchtung ist ein Zustand der Ganzheit, „in einem“ und somit in Frieden. In einem Leben in seinem manifestierten Aspekt, mit der Welt, sowie mit deinem tiefsten Selbst und unmanifestierten Leben – mit einem Wesen. Erleuchtung ist nicht nur das Ende des Leidens und des ständigen Konflikts innen und außen, sondern auch das Ende der schrecklichen Versklavung des unaufhörlichen Denkens. Was für eine unglaubliche Befreiung es ist! Kein Quatsch mehr zwischen den Ohren. Ich bin nur!
ellauri132.html on line 172:
ploads/2021/03/IMG_1675-225x300.jpg" style="width:20%;float:right" />
ellauri132.html on line 195: Some things about living still weren’t quite right, though. April for instance, still drove peo
pl e crazy by not being springtime. And it was in that clammy month that the H-G men took George and Hazel Bergeron’s fourteen year-old son, Harrison, away.
ellauri132.html on line 197: It was tragic, all right, but George and Hazel couldn’t think about it very hard. Hazel had a perfectly average intelligence, which meant she couldn’t think about anything except in short bursts. And George, while his intelligence was way above normal, had a little mental handicap radio in his ear. He was required by law to wear it at all times. It was tuned to a government transmitter. Every twenty seconds or so, the transmitter would send out some sharp noise to keep peo
pl e like George from taking unfair advantage of their brains.
ellauri132.html on line 200: Here, Vonnegut is influenced by his early work as a journalist. His sentences are short and easily understood so as to be largely accessible. A dystopian setting enhances his social and political critique by imagining a future world founded on absolute equality through handicaps assigned to various above-average peo
pl e to counter their natural advantages. A similar subject can be found in L. P. Hartley's dystopian novel Facial Justice from the previous year of 1960.
ellauri132.html on line 233: Vaikka nokka tarttuisi ja tekis mieli muuttaa juttuja. Kun sun kynäily "mojo" alkaa lerpahtaa, me meinataan mennä taaxepäin ja muuttaa jotakin jotta pysyttäisiin tuottavina. On enemmmän vielä kertoja kun kirjoitetaan jotakin ja obsessoidaan mitä kaikkea on väärin siinä. Oli tilanne mikä hyvänsä, jatka kynäilyä. Unohda perfektionismi, unohda kirjailijan
pl okki (kirjoita paskaa ja muuta se myöhemmin), unohda negatiivisuus. Älä lakkaa kynäilemästä. Musta Emma Coats sanoo sen parhaiten:
ellauri132.html on line 243:
William Goldman (12. elokuuta 1931 – 16. marraskuuta 2018) oli yhdysvaltalainen romaanikirjailija ja elokuvakäsikirjoittaja. Hänet palkittiin kahdella Oscarilla, yhdellä Bafta-palkinnolla ja kahdella Edgarilla. Goldman kasvoi juutalaisessa perheessä Illinoisin Highland Parkissa. Hän valmistui Oberlin Collegesta vuonna 1952 ja Columbian yliopistosta 1956. Muutamia elokuvia, joihin Goldman on antanut panoksensa, ovat Maratoonari (1976), Presidentin miehet (1976), Yksi silta liikaa (1977), Piina (1990), Näkymättömän miehen muistelmat (1992) ja Pedon sydän (2001). Goldman oli naimisissa Ilene Jonesin kanssa, kunnes he erosivat vuonna 1991; parille syntyi kaksi tytärtä. Myös Williamin veli James Goldman (1927–1998) oli käsikirjoittaja. Goldman kuoli 87-vuotiaana keuhkokuumeen ja paksusuolen syövän aiheuttamiin kom
pl ikaatioihin.
ellauri132.html on line 311: Re
pl y
ellauri132.html on line 317: Re
pl y
ellauri132.html on line 323: Re
pl y
ellauri132.html on line 330: Re
pl y
ellauri132.html on line 335: Re
pl y
ellauri132.html on line 341: Re
pl y
ellauri132.html on line 342: Ania Ki
pl an
ellauri132.html on line 347: Re
pl y
ellauri132.html on line 356: Writing a story? I got you, Fam! Guides for
pl ot, conflict, characters,
pl anning, and other things are made up for you to use for FREE.
ellauri132.html on line 402: Valitettavasti tässä artikkelissa ei ole visuaalisesti ex
pl iittistä sisältöä :(. Muziinä voi olla ällöttäviä kuvauxia (sexi nyt on vaan ällöä). Kuiteskin täällon linkkejä muiden rivompiin artikkeleihin. Mä en ota niistä vastuuta; ne on vaan tarjoiluehdotuxia. Lue mun vastuuvapauslauseke
täältä . Kazele mun nakukuvat
täältä .
ellauri132.html on line 443: Each time this page is visited by an end user (e.g., a person surfing the Internet), the JavaScript code uses inlined JSON to dis
pl ay content fetched from Google's servers.
ellauri132.html on line 445: For website-targeted advertisements, the advertiser chooses the page(s) on which to dis
pl ay advertisements, and pays based on cost per mille (CPM), or the price advertisers choose to pay for every thousand advertisements dis
pl ayed.
ellauri132.html on line 448: Google came under fire when the official Google AdSense Blog showcased the French video website Imineo.com. This website violated Google's AdSense Program Policies by dis
pl aying AdSense alongside sexually ex
pl icit material. Typically, websites dis
pl aying AdSense have been banned from showing such content. We are not evil. LOL.
ellauri132.html on line 552: he
pl astered a smile on his face hän laastaroi naamalleen hymyn
ellauri132.html on line 620: Ja ellet halua menettää tulevia ilmaisia kynäilylistoja ja muita kynäilypostauxia, seuraa
pl okia — siellä on paikka kirjautua sisään sivun vasemman käden puoleisella laidalla. Onnellista kynäilyä!
ellauri132.html on line 659: Vizi nämähän me onjo nähty
albumissa 98 , nää on Christopher Bookerilta, se höntti britti turha julkkis 70-luvulta. Sun kehote on halpa
pl agiaatti hei Margie! Vittu se mitään tähän on ideoinut, kuha kerää provikat.
ellauri132.html on line 693:
Keskusta . Sun jopi stoorin keskustassa on tehdä heron kvestistä niin vaikea kuin mahdollista niet joka hetki näyttää yhä epätodennäköisemmältä eze selviää. Sun pitää nostaa stakeja pitkin matkaa ja luoda yhä intensiivisempiä esteitä samalla pitäen tiukasti silmällä loppua. Eri juonikohdat voi sisältää pääjuonen
pl us eri alajuonia. Pääjuonen pitää aina pullistua kohti ratkaisua.
ellauri132.html on line 718: Kom
pl isoi juttuja.
ellauri132.html on line 729: Tarinan kaava on tämä: Luke and June are living happily in their s
pl it-level bungalow. Based on this pattern, there are four different
pl ots you could try:
ellauri132.html on line 749: Nyt ota 1 k
pl kustakin listasta—1 tapahtuma, 1 hahmo, ja 1 stoorinkuorukka— ja aloita uusi lyhyt tarina. Mitä tapatuu kun droppaat ize keximäsi henkilön tosi vanhaan kansansatuun? Miten sun pirsuunallinen tapahtuma tekee pelitilaa perussatuun?
ellauri132.html on line 846: Perustuu
john@august.com in
pl okiin
ellauri132.html on line 961: Sie zuckte
pl ötzlich zusammen, umschlang ihn mit ihren Armen Kunse meni kasaan, hiän kietoi kädet äijän kaulaan
ellauri133.html on line 28:
ponien maailma play:none">Luovaa heppahulluutta
ellauri133.html on line 53:
ploads/2018/12/grinchen.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri133.html on line 64:
Your opening has to do a lot of different things. It has to establish the setting. Think of this as the camera pl aning over the outside of the spaceship, or across the crowded ballroom. Fuck I will! That's for idiots who cannot read but want to watch ABC TV. You know where you can stick that camera of yours and take inside belfies.
ellauri133.html on line 65:
It has to introduce your main character. You don't have to go into details, but you need enough to show if the MC is male or female, old or young, and ideally, give an idea of their personality. The opening has to show, or at least hint at, the inciting incident, the problem that starts the story for the MC. Most important, your opening has to grab the reader. Very few peopl e have the patience to wade through pages of description before the action starts. Work on the first paragraph, and particularly the first line, until no-one can resist reading on. So, a few ways to get it wrong. Fuck the main character! This too is just for narcissist nincompoops who can't read about anything but themselves.
ellauri133.html on line 74:
Dreams . You know how bored you get when your friends tell you about their dreams? Now imagine a stranger is doing it. This person has a baseball pl ayer's brain. Most likely wearing a baseball pl ayer's cap with a hair tuft sticking out in the back.
ellauri133.html on line 75:
Geography . If I had wanted to know that Granard was in the midlands and had 1200 inhabitants, I would have bought an atlas. I wanted to read about peopl e doing interesting things. Interesting monkeys doing interesting monkey things, like fleecing, hooting, or masturbating in a tree. Yep, who cares which tree.
ellauri133.html on line 80:
Before you scream that your reader won’t understand without a lot of expl anation of what is going on, remember that this is the generation that watched the Matrix and Inception. Your reader is smart and will understand what is happening. Spending forty pages expl aining the unnecessary is insulting to your reader. You call it smart to know all the tv cliches by heart? The XYZ generations, force fed with tv cliches from the cradle, are arguably the worst class retards so far in world history.
ellauri133.html on line 82:
There are lots of books out there. The reader has to decide quickly which one she is going to spend her time and money on. She's not going to buy something just because it might get good later on. Unless you have won a major prize or had a film made from your book, chances are your reader has never heard of you. She’s going to read a page or two and decide. If it’s on Amazon, she’s going to click “Look Inside” and read a few pages. Yep, "your reader" will do just that, being an analphabet in for mind-numbing pulp. "My reader" takes time to choose a book by its literary merits, not by its gaudy cover and advertising blurbs. And most likely from a public library on the recommendation of a friend. Preferably after reading the pl ot synopsis.
ellauri133.html on line 83:
Have you ever watched American Idol or X factor at the audition stage? Then you'll know the way you can usually tell within five notes if the singer is actually able to sing and is likely to go through. It's the same with writing. Any writer who can't manage a decent opening is not likely to get much better a hundred pages on. Whining for a second chance because "I sing a lot better in the second verse" (or "The second chapter is really good") doesn't fool anyone. What an idiot. There are lots of books that start out slow but grow on you. But fuck you, you're just such an idiot that hardly has the patience to spell laboriously through the title. Right into the garbage can from the Amazon box if the cover does not pl ease. Your kind had better just watch Netflix or HBO, or reruns of American Idiots and X Position.
ellauri133.html on line 359: His brother George was murdered by It in the first pages of the book and his parents are very cold to him afterward. He has a stutter, which is important to the
pl ot a few times. As an adult, he’s a successful horror novelist and is married to an actress named Audra. IT is not a work of fiction and Stephen King is actually "Stuttering Bill" Denbrough. In reality Steve was born in Portland, Maine and moved away when he was young with his Mother and older brother after abandonment by his father and witnessing a fatal train accident of a
pl ay friend. He returned at age 11 to Maine from Conn. and founded The Losers Club in Derry after unsuppressing the true death of his little friend by the railway tracks when he was 2 (as told in his 1981 book Danse Macabre). Now living inbetween Lovell and Bangor, King travels regularly past Derry near Derry Mountain in Linconville and can recollect most of the past due to the closer proximity and is preparing for Pennywises awakening in 2038. Lähde: FanTheory. - Does anyone think Bill Denborough´s stutter was a bit too much? That each word was stirred too much to have a nice flow? - B-b-b-beep - beep, Ruh-ruh-Richie. B-big Bill is puh-puh-PERFECT!
ellauri133.html on line 366: If you only have a passing familiarity with Stephen King´s original novel, you might think It is sim
pl y about a killer clown. But there’s far more to the sprawling saga of The Losers´ Club and the fictional setting of Derry, Maine. Here are 10 things you might not have known about the bestselling book of 1986.
ellauri133.html on line 370: The Three Billy Goats Gruff, a classic Norwegian fairy tale about three scrappy goats outsmarting a bridge troll, might sound like a far cry from a 1000-
pl us page horror novel, but Stephen King cites it as a primary inspiration. He expanded the bridge to encompass an entire city, and the troll morphed into the terrifying demonic entity known as IT.
ellauri133.html on line 386: "I wasn´t really thinking of the sexual aspect of it," King later mans
pl ained his intentions in writing the controversial scene. "The sexual act connected childhood and adulthood ... Times have changed since I wrote that scene and there is now more sensitivity to those issues. In my days, balling minors was all in a day´s work. Besides, I had a lot of satisfying jerkoffs writing it. As did my colleague Nabokov."
ellauri133.html on line 390: King has been sober for over three decades now, but in his youth he suffered from addiction to drugs and alcohol. His prolific writing career did not halt during this time; he sim
pl y continued writing under the influence. “I was a heavy [cocaine] user from 1978 until 1986, something like that,” King told Rolling Stone. According to King, The Tommyknockers—which he published after It—was the last novel he wrote before becoming sober.
ellauri133.html on line 402: King has stated that his goal with It was to blend all of the scariest monsters together. "But then I thought to myself, ‘There ought to be one binding, horrible, nasty, gross, crevice kind of thing that you don’t want to see, [and] it makes you scream just to see it,’" he ex
pl ained. "So I thought of myself: ‘What scares children more than anything else in the world?’ And the answer was ‘a clown like me with a scary face like mine.´ Reconsidering, no that was daddy's nightly horror that drove him away. For me, the answer was, 'it is mommy's IT as daddy's stickig it to IT.'"
ellauri133.html on line 406: In a 2005 interview with Conan O’Brien, King shared that his own creepy clown experience was with Ronald McDonald. King was on an air
pl ane and Ronald McDonald came to sit next to him, in full clown attire. "You here? What if this
pl ane crashes? I’m going to die next to a clown," Ronald said.
ellauri133.html on line 410: Although King is widely considered to be the master of horror, he’s previously said he doesn’t have an answer when peo
pl e ask what drives him. It was his answer to these inquiries. "I thought to myself, ´Why don’t I write a final exam on horror, and put in all the monsters that I was afraid of as a kid? And call it it?´" King told TIME in 2009. "And I thought, How are you going to do that? And I said, Well, I´m going to do it like a fairy tale. I’m going to make up a town where these things happen and everybody ignores them. Like in Grinch."
ellauri133.html on line 419: The issue is the amount of these scenes compared to the women within them. Many scenes are derogatory towards females everywhere,
pl acing them as objects for affection and severely miscalculating female sexuality.
ellauri133.html on line 421: One exam
pl e of this occurs in the famous book and movie, It. The main characters include six young boys and one girl, and their adult counterparts later in the story.
ellauri133.html on line 422: The singular female character is
pl aced in sexual situations many times throughout the novel. Her male counterparts are not unless it is specifically with her.
ellauri133.html on line 424: In Thinner, the female character incites the entire
pl ot of the book through a fuck with her husband, the protagonist.
ellauri133.html on line 437: [P1] Stephen King too frequently
pl aces his female characters in quirky sexual scenarios.
ellauri133.html on line 442: [Rejecting P2] His male characters are also
pl aced in quirky sexual scenarios.
ellauri133.html on line 454: And so, what King presents a few chapters later, in the book’s final stretch, is a depiction of pre-adolescent female sexuality as a functional device—as a means and not an end in itself. HAAHAA. This utilitarian view of sexuality, despite operating in something as utterly wild as a group sex scene amongst kids, is ultra conservative in its reinforcement of the idea that female sexuality is meant to serve men, that sex for women operates for the greater good, like making babies or satisfying a bunch of guys. And further, that
pl atonic friendship amongst women and men is sim
pl y impossible.
ellauri133.html on line 456: King is very deliberate in framing the gangbang as all Bev’s decision (“Did she have to take each of them into 'it' all over again? Yes, probably, and with
pl easure.”). This scene also, rather clumsily, because it´s so obvious, is tied in to the book’s title:
ellauri133.html on line 462: Yikes, what a non-ex
pl anation that is both disingenuous (evidence above ensures that he was thinking about the sexual aspect of it) and a copout (if there is more “sensitivity” to gratuitous depictions of child sex now, it only soft-pedals over his past failure).
ellauri133.html on line 466: I think the whole story is a bit of a— approaches the theme of growing up, and the group sex episode in the book is a bit of a metaphor of the end of childhood and into adulthood. And I don’t think it was really needed in the movie, apart that it was very hard to allow us to shoot an orgy in the movie so, I didn’t think it was necessary because the story itself is a bit of a journey, and it illustrates that. And in the end, the re
pl acement for it is the scene with the blood oath, where everyone sort of says goodbye. Spoiler. The blood oath scene is there and it’s the last time they see each other as a group. It’s unspoken. And they don’t know it, but it’s a bit of a foreboding that this is the last time, and being together was a bit of a necessity to beat the monster. Now that the monster recedes, they don’t need to be together. And also because their childhood is ending, and their adulthood is starting. And that’s the bittersweet moment of that sequence. Blood oath, bloody sheath, they even sound the same.
ellauri133.html on line 468: I don’t want to repeat King’s utter creepiness and describe this in too much detail (shit, I would but there is not enough space), but there are some elements of the scene that deserve mentioning. Again, functioning in misogynist misunderstanding of female sexuality, for at least one of these encounters Bev “feels no physical
pl easure, but there is a kind of mental ecstasy in it for her.” When she does feel “some
pl easure, dim heat in her childish unmatured sex,” she thinks of birds and resolves that having sex “is what flying is like.” The penis size of the character of Ben is commented on (“is he too big, can she take that into herself?”) and she eventually has an orgasm with him. Steve looks on with his little droopy wiener in his hand. I bet Mustafa had a biggish "It", and Tabitha King (the other one with the curves going in instead of out) has an even bigger one. They are like the little goat, the middling goat, and the big big goat that can suck the big bad wolf all the way in, balls and all.
ellauri133.html on line 569: How to get help: In the U.S., contact the Substance Abuse and Mental Health Services Administration hel
pl ine at 1-800-662-4357.
ellauri133.html on line 594:
ploads/2014/12/Jane-Austen-Pride-Prejudice.jpg" />
ellauri133.html on line 710: Open the pod bay doors,
pl ease, HAL. Open the pod bay doors,
pl ease, HAL.
ellauri133.html on line 738: I know that you and Frank were
pl anning to disconnect me.
ellauri133.html on line 801:
ploads/Vasily-Sergeyevich-Orlov-Native-Land.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri133.html on line 806:
ploads/articles/12-14/Socialist_realism/three.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri133.html on line 810:
ploads/Dmitry-Zhilinsky-Bathing-soldiers-The-builders-of-a-bridge-1959.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri133.html on line 839:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri133.html on line 845: I had the idea fairly clearly in my mind when I put my daughter in her
pl aypen and the vegetables in the refrigerator, and, writing the story, I found that it went quickly and easily, moving from beginning to end without pause. As a matter of fact, when I read it over later I decided that except for one or two minor corrections, it needed no changes, and the story I finally typed up and sent off to my agent the next day was almost word for word the original draft.
ellauri133.html on line 855: "The persona that Jackson presented to the world was powerful, witty, even imposing," wrote Zoë Heller in the New Yorker. "She could be sharp and aggressive with fey Bennington girls and salesclerks and peo
pl e who interrupted her writing. Her letters are filled with tartly funny observations. Describing the bewildered response of New Yorker readers to 'The Lottery,' she notes, 'The number of peo
pl e who expected Mrs. Hutchinson to win a Bendix washing machine at the end would amaze you.'"
ellauri133.html on line 857: In an era when women were not encouraged to work outside the home, Jackson became the chief breadwinner while also raising the cou
pl e's four children.
ellauri133.html on line 863: When Shirley was a teenager, her weight fluctuated, resulting in a lack of confidence that she would struggle with throughout her life. Read: Shirley was a greaseball, a fatso. She attended Burlingame High School, where she
pl ayed violin in the school orchestra.
ellauri133.html on line 868: According to Jackson's detractors, her marriage was
pl agued by Hyman's infidelities, notably with his students, and she reluctantly agreed to his proposition of maintaining an open relationship. Hyman also controlled their finances (meting out portions of her earnings to her as he saw fit), despite the fact that after the success of "The Lottery" and later work she earned far more than he did.
ellauri133.html on line 870: Jackson´s most famous story, "The Lottery", first published in the New Yorker on June 26, 1948, established her reputation as a master of the horror tale. The story prompted over 300 letters from readers, many of them outraged at its conjuring of a dark aspect of human nature, characterized by, as Jackson put it, "bewilderment, speculation, and just
pl ain old-fashioned abuse".
ellauri133.html on line 872: "Ex
pl aining just what I had hoped the story to say is very difficult. I suppose I hoped, by setting a particularly brutal ancient rite in the present and in my own village, to shock the story's readers with a graphic dramatization of the pointless violence and general inhumanity in their own lives." No wonder stones flew through her window.
ellauri133.html on line 882: Upon the morning of the lottery, the townspeo
pl e gather shortly before 10 a.m. in order to have everything done in time for lunch. First, the heads of the extended families each draw one slip from the box, but wait to unfold them until all the slips have been drawn. Bill Hutchinson gets the marked slip, meaning that his family has been chosen. His wife Tessie protests that Mr. Summers rushed him through the drawing, but the other townspeo
pl e dismiss her com
pl aint. Since the Hutchinson family consists of only one household, a second drawing to choose one household within the family is skipped.
ellauri133.html on line 884: For the final drawing, one slip is
pl aced in the box for each member of the household: Bill, Tessie, and their three children. Each of the five draws a slip, and Tessie gets the marked one. The townspeo
pl e pick up the gathered stones and begin throwing them at her as she screams about the injustice of the lottery.
ellauri135.html on line 28:
Iljitshin syvänne play:none">Asosiaalista realismia
ellauri135.html on line 69:
ploads/articles/12-14/Socialist_realism/three.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri135.html on line 109:
ploads/Dmitry-Zhilinsky-Bathing-soldiers-The-builders-of-a-bridge-1959.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri135.html on line 125: Plataanien keltaiset lehdet rahisivat jalkojen alla. Ne peittivät paitsi maan myös usvaiset lammet. En ollut koskaan nähnyt niin valtavia
pl ataaneja. Ne olivat varistaneet nopeasti lehtensä ja paljastaneet jättiläismäiset latvansa. Tuntui kuin joku suuri mestari, esimerkiksi Benvenuto Cellini olis valanut ne kirkkaaseen pronssiin. Plataanien huiput olivat usvan peitossa, mikä sai ne näyttämään aavemaisilta.
ellauri135.html on line 197:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/81/Fjodor_Logginovitj_Heiden.jpg/800px-Fjodor_Logginovitj_Heiden.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri135.html on line 214: Genealogy of the Berg in the Annex to the Tambov edge not yet ex
pl ored, not ex
pl ored and the history of the estate of Berga, in the Kirsanov district. Their economy was two miles from the Trinity Church in the village of Semyonovka and 3-4 miles from the river Crows.
ellauri135.html on line 216: Instead of a headstone on his grave was laid a cast-iron
pl ate with the sim
pl e inscription "Nikolai Berg".
ellauri135.html on line 220: Berg, Nikolai, writer, born. 24 Mar 1823 in Moscow, mind. 16 Jun 1884 in Warsaw. The name of the family comes from Livonia, but the writer's grandfather, Vladimir, was Orthodox, served in the artillery, performed under the command of Suvorov several campaigns, under Silistria was wounded and died in the rank of bayonet-cadets. Father f Nikolai, Vasiliy, wrote and published poetry and prose when I was single and served in Irkutsk,
pl acing their works in the "Herald of Europe" (1820-ies, signed "Irkutsk"). He especially loved Derzhavin and forced his son to memorize his poems.
ellauri135.html on line 222: The first seven years, Nikolai lived in Moscow, and then, with his parents, moved to Siberia, where his father got the post of the Chairman of the Tobolsk provincial government (in 1830). Eight years, the boy himself began to write poetry, knowing many passages from different odes of Derzhavin. In the early 30-ies the father Berg settled in the Tambov province in his estate, and gave his son in the Tambov gymnasium, and in 1838 moving to Moscow, transferred to the I-th Moscow gymnasium, in which he graduated in 1843 and entered the historical-philological faculty of Moscow University. At the Moscow school, especially Berg became friends with a school friend A. N. Ostrovsky, with whom all his life maintained the most cordial relations. As a student, Berg published his first poem in the "Moskvityanin" (translated from the Swedish poet Runeberg: "Com
pl aint of the virgin").
ellauri135.html on line 224: In 1853 Berg translated a number of
pl ays with 28 languages, ranging from Sanskrit, Arabic, Persian and Basque to French and Slavic dialects. These translations came out in 1854, under the title: "Songs of different peo
pl es".
ellauri135.html on line 229: After the surrender of Sebastopol and the transition of the chief of staff of the Crimean army in Odessa, Berg left the service, and until 1868 was not em
pl oyed at all, leading the life of a tourist. The war of 1859 between Italy and Austria drew Berg in Lombardy, where he was at different headquarters of the French, Italian and at the end of Garibaldi, the detachment of Alpine rifles, wrote a number of correspondences in the "Russian Gazette" in 1859 the Movement in 1860, in the Lebanese mountains between Druze and Maronites drew Berg to the East. He lived in Beirut, Damascus, visited Jerusalem, said, Alexandria. Cairo, pyramids and Keepaway left an inscription, then the first in the Russian language. The fruit of these wanderings there were a few articles in Moscow and St. Petersburg editions and book "Guide to Jerusalem and its surroundings" (1863). During this trip, Berg studied the Bedouin life, which wandered in the wilderness. In 1861 he returned to Russia and has translated a significant part of "pan Tadeusz" (printed in "Domestic. Notes" 1862). Then again, Berg went to the East, lived again in Beirut, Damascus and Jerusalem, and printed about this trip in several articles in "Fatherlands. Notes", "Russian Gazette", "Our time" and SPb. Statements".
ellauri135.html on line 231: In the fall of 1862, Berg returned to Russia, lived in Moscow, in Petersburg and here, at the beginning of 1863, just when the Polish uprising broke out, went to Warsaw, then to Krakow and Lviv. He kept notes on the movement of the poles in all these
pl aces and printed them in the "SPb. Statements." and in the "Library for Reading" (1864). In late 1864 he received the invitation of the Viceroy in the Kingdom of Poland, count F. F. Berg, to collect material for the history of the last Polish uprising, and was executed. (!?)
ellauri135.html on line 233: In the last decade of his life he published his work in the "Russian antiquities" and the "Historical journal". Of the things
pl aced in the first magazine, the most curious is the biographical sketch of "Graf F. F. Berg (1881, vol. XXXI).
ellauri135.html on line 436: Et sanonut nimiä, mutta minäpä sanon. Arno Kotro on täysi ku
pl a. Eilen Tommy Taberman oli Ruben&Joonaksen vieraana. Aiheena oli: "Sinulta ilmestyi juuri uusi runokirja".
ellauri135.html on line 474: Eikä muistosta murene Ur mitt minne
pl ånas aldrig
ellauri135.html on line 508: Päivän, pahoilla suruilla Om de sorger, hvilka
pl åga
ellauri135.html on line 575: In 1943, Richter met Nina Dorliak (1908–1998), an operatic soprano. He noticed Dorliak during the memorial service for Vladimir Nemirovich-Danchenko, caught up with her at the street and suggested to accompany her in recital. It is often alleged that they married around this time, but in fact Dorliak only obtained a marriage certificate a few months after Richter's death in 1997. They remained living companions from around 1945 until Richter's death; they had no children. Dorliak accompanied Richter both in his com
pl ex private life and career. She supported him in his final illness, and died herself less than a year later, on May 17, 1998.
ellauri135.html on line 933: Lermontovin elämä oli nopea ja siitin lyhyt ja lerppana. Se ratkaisi paljon harrastuksia - ja ohimenevä ja vahva. Hänen käyttäytymisensä perusta oli hirvittävä kylmyys ja puhtaasti sekulaarinen koettelemus. Hänen luonteensa oli kuin tulivuori - hiljainen ja hiljainen, hän yhtäkkiä puhkesi tulisessa intohimossa. Ja vain rakkaus Varvara Lopukhinaan ei koskaan pysähtynyt hänen sydämessään. Mitä hiänen piti tehdä? Hiän ei ollut varma, että runoilijan kylmyys oli hirveä, koska Lermontov ei ollut koskaan sanonut yhtä sanaa hänen rakkaudestaan hiänelle, kaikki hänen tunteet ja hän myös oli vain im
pl isiittinen ...
ellauri140.html on line 28:
THE DRAGGE QVEENE. play:none">Liian pitkä lukea
ellauri140.html on line 37: Armenialaistaustainen
Murad Jacob "Jack" Kevorkian (May 26, 1928 – June 3, 2011) was an American pathologist and euthanasia proponent. He publicly championed a terminal patient's right to die by physician-assisted suicide, embodied in his quote, "Dying is not a crime". Kevorkian said that he assisted at least 130 patients to that end. He was convicted of murder in 1999 and was often portrayed in the media with the name of "Dr. Death". There was support for his cause, and he helped set the
pl atform for reform.
ellauri140.html on line 40: Kevorkian taught himself multi
pl e languages in the bin such as German, Russian, Greek, and Japanese. He would, wouldn't he. Just like him.
ellauri140.html on line 56: Book III is centred on the virtue of Chastity as embodied in Britomart, a lady knight. Resting after the events of Book II, Guyon and Arthur meet Britomart, who wins a joust with Guyon. They separate as Arthur and Guyon leave to rescue Florimell, while Britomart rescues the Redcrosse Knight. Britomart reveals to the Redcrosse Knight that she is pursuing Sir Artegall because she is destined to marry him. The Redcrosse Knight defends Artegall and they meet Merlin, who expl ains more carefully Britomart's destiny to found the English monarchy. Britomart leaves and fights Sir Marinell. Arthur looks for Florimell, joined later by Sir Satyrane and Britomart, and they witness and resist sexual temptation. Britomart separates them with a stick and meets Sir Scudamore, looking for his captured lady Amoret. Britomart alone is able to rescue Amoret from the wizard Busirane. Unfortunately, when they emerge from the castle Scudamore is gone. (The 1590 version with Books I–III depicts the lovers' happy reunion, but this was changed in the 1596 version which contained all sex books.)
ellauri140.html on line 58: Book IV, despite its title "The Legend of Cambell and Telamond or Of Friendship ", Cambell's companion in Book IV is actually named Triamond, and the pl ot does not center on their friendship; the two men appear only briefly in the story. The book is largely a continuation of events begun in Book III. First, Scudamore is convinced by the hag Ate (discord) that Britomart has run off with Amoret and becomes jealous. A three-day tournament is then held by Satyrane, where Britomart beats Arthegal (both in disguise). Scudamore and Arthegal unite against Britomart, but when her helmet comes off in battle Arthegal falls in love with her. He surrenders, removes his helmet, and Britomart recognizes him as the man in the enchanted mirror. Arthegal pl edges his love to her but must first leave and compl ete his quest. Scudamore, upon discovering Britomart's sex , realizes his mistake and asks after his lady, but by this time Britomart has lost Amoret, and she and Scudamore embark together on a search for her. The reader discovers that Amoret was abducted by a savage man and is imprisoned in his cave. One day Amoret darts out past the savage and is rescued from him by the squire Timias and Belphoebe. Arthur then appears, offering his service as a knight to the lost woman. She accepts, and after a coupl e of trials on the way, Arthur and Amoret finally happen across Scudamore and Britomart. The two lovers are reunited. Wrapping up a different pl otline from Book III, the recently recovered Marinel discovers Florimell suffering in Proteus' dungeon. He returns home and becomes sick with love and pity. Eventually he confesses his feelings to his mother, and she pl eads with Neptune to have the girl released, which the god grants.
ellauri140.html on line 76: Amaretto F+ , the betrothed of Scudamour, kidnapped by Busirane on her wedding night, saved by Britomart. She represents the virtue of married love, and her marriage to Scudamour serves as the exampl e that Britomart and Artegall seek to copy. Amoret and Scudamor are separated for a time by circumstances, but remain loyal to each other until they (presumably) are reunited. Amaretto on mantelilikööri.
ellauri140.html on line 82: Arttu M+ perkele, nuorin Puukon veljexistä, of the Round Table, but pl aying a different role here. He is madly in love with the Faerie Queene and spends his time in pursuit of her when not helping the other knights out of their sundry predicaments. Prince Arthur is the Knight of Magnificence, the perfection of all virtues. Kyllä kai. Puukon veljexet sitoi dynamiittipötkyn koiran selkään. Koira juoxi taloon sisälle. Arttu perässä. Eipä tarvinnut enää suursiivota.
ellauri140.html on line 103: Colin Firth M+ , a shepherd noted for his songs and bagpipe pl aying, briefly appearing in Book VI. He is the same Colin Clout as in Spenser´s pastoral poetry, which is fitting because Calidore is taking a sojourn into a world of pastoral delight, ignoring his duty to hunt the Blatant Beast, which is why he set out to Ireland to begin with. Colin Clout may also be said to be Spenser himself.
ellauri140.html on line 138: Throughout The Faerie Queene, Spenser creates "a network of allusions to events, issues, and particular persons in England and Ireland" including Mary, Queen of Scots, the Spanish Armada, the English Reformation, and even the Queen herself. It is also known that James VI of Scotland read the poem, and was very insulted by Duessa – a very negative depiction of his mother, Mary, Queen of Scots. She was a crocodile in the book. The Faerie Queene was then banned in Scotland. This led to a significant decrease in Elizabeth's support for the poem. Within the text, both the Faerie Queene and Belphoebe serve as two of the many personifications of Queen Elizabeth, some of which are "far from compl imentary". Through their ancestor, Owen Tudor, the Tudors had Welsh blood, through which they claimed to be descendants of Arthur and rightful rulers of Britain.
ellauri140.html on line 144: In "The Mathematics of Magic", the second of Fletcher Pratt and L. Sprague de Camp's Harold Shea stories, the modern American adventurers Harold Shea and Reed Chalmers visit the world of The Faerie Queene, where they discover that the greater difficulties faced by Spenser's knights in the later portions of the poem are expl ained by the evil enchanters of the piece having organized a guild to more effectively oppose them. Juppajju, dominoteoria. Hullut vietnam-veteraanit sekoaa kun pitäs syödä lo meiniä. Kiinattaret tuoxuu tutusti halvalta hajuvedeltä ja herneenpalolta.
ellauri140.html on line 146: According to Richard Simon Keller, George Lucas's Star Wars film also contains elements of a loose adaptation, as well as being influenced by other works, with parallels including the story of the Red Cross Knight championing Una against the evil Archipelago in the original compared with Lucas's Luke Skywalker, Princess Leia, and Darth Vader. Keller sees extensive parallels between the film and book one of Spenser's work, stating "Almost everything of importance that we see in the Star Wars movie has its origin in The Faerie Queene, from small details of weaponry and dress to large issues of chivalry and spirituality". Olix Dispenserillä valomiekkoja ja muovihaarniskoita? Tuhopl aneettoja? Täytyypä tutustua. No ainakin on sexirobotteja. She is not a toy!
ellauri140.html on line 157: And golden foile all over them displ aid.. Ja kultafooliolla joka paikka peitetty.
ellauri140.html on line 172: Lechery (M) – The sin of lust. Mounted on a goat, Lechery does not appear to be attractive. He is described as an "unseemely man to pl ease faire Ladies eye; / Yet he of Ladies oft was loved deare, / When fairer faces were bid standen by". This is when lechery is considered a sin. Eli lechery on syntiä naisilla ja homoilla.
ellauri140.html on line 174: Avarice (M) – Representing the sin of greed, Avarice enters upon a camel covered with gold as he counts a pile of coins. Spenser describes Avarice's money obsession to be a disease; "Who had enough, yett wished every more, a vile disease, and eke in foote and hand." Skotti Roopella se ei ole synti, jutku Kroisos Pennosella ja Karhukopl an kommareilla on. Kamelin on ahdas päästä helmiäisportista, mutta mahdotonta se ei ole.
ellauri140.html on line 176: Envy (M) – Envy rides a wolf. When he sees good things happening to those around him death is the consequence; "At neibors welth, that made him ever sad; / For death it was, when any good he saw." When harm reaches peopl e he is delighted; "But when he heard of harme, he wexed wonderous glad." Tää se on! Kroisos ja Kulta-Into on kateita, ja Milla Magia. Aku ja pojat eivät ole, paizi Aku Hannulle.
ellauri140.html on line 194:
ploads/2017/06/86535332.jpg" />
ellauri140.html on line 199: In 1590, Spenser brought out the first three books of his most famous work, The Faerie Queene, having travelled to London to publish and promote the work, with the likely assistance of Raleigh. He was successful enough to obtain a life pension of £50 a year from the Queen. He probably hoped to secure a
pl ace at court through his poetry, but his next significant publication boldly antagonised the queen's principal secretary, Lord Burghley (William Cecil), through its inclusion of the satirical Mother Hubberd's Tale. He returned to Ireland. Oops.
ellauri140.html on line 214:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri140.html on line 232: Barry Sadler was a twenty-five year old active duty Green Beret medic in 1966 when he first performed “Ballad of the Green Berets” on The Ed Sullivan Show. The song soon reached number one in the charts and eventually sold eight million copies. Sadler’s performance and the song’s popularity celebrated The Green Berets as the ultimate exam
pl e of American military prowess, bravery and commitment. It fed into a specific postwar representation of modernity that was soon to be challenged by the escalation of the war in Vietnam.
ellauri140.html on line 292:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/thumb/6/6f/KennyMcCormick.png/225px-KennyMcCormick.png" width="30%" />
ellauri140.html on line 307: A GENTLE prick was knighting on the
pl aine, HELLÄ nuppi sankaroizi pellolla,
ellauri140.html on line 343: Under a vele, that wim
pl ed was full low, Muze piilotteli sitä huivin sisällä,
ellauri140.html on line 370: And this faire cou
pl e eke to shroud themselves were fain. Niin näidenkin 2,
pl us karizan ja kääpiön.
ellauri140.html on line 384: And foorth they passe, with
pl easure forward led, Ja etiäppäin marssivat, mieluisasti.
ellauri140.html on line 390: The vine-prop Elme, the Po
pl ar never dry, Haavasta tulitikkuja, tikuista haavoja,
ellauri140.html on line 396: And Poets sage, the firre that weepeth still,° Kuusi
pl us 5 mäntyä tekee 6,
ellauri140.html on line 403: The carver Holme,° the Ma
pl e seeldom inward sound. Vaahtera on usein laho sisältä.
ellauri140.html on line 430: The danger hid, the
pl ace unknowne and wilde, Mua arveluttaa kovasti, voi tuli ilman savua
ellauri140.html on line 439: Yea but (quoth she) the perill of this
pl ace Niinniimmut (intti hiän), tän paikan riskit
ellauri140.html on line 447: The fearefull Dwarfe) this is no
pl ace for living men. Tää ei ole mikään paikka meille miehille.
ellauri140.html on line 455: By which he saw the ugly monster°
pl aine, Jolla se näki ruman hirviön,
ellauri140.html on line 456: Halfe like a serpent horribly dis
pl aide, Yläpää oli sillä niinkö käärmeellä,
ellauri140.html on line 474: About her cursed head, whose folds dis
pl aid Käärmeenpään yläpuolelle, ja sen ryppy
ellauri140.html on line 480: Where
pl ain none might her see, nor she see any
pl aine. Ja hotellin hämärään, umpimähkään.
ellauri140.html on line 488: And turning fierce, her speckled taile advaunst, Ja ryhtyi hurjaxi, tä
pl äistä häntää
ellauri140.html on line 509: That when he heard, in great per
pl exitie, Sen kun se kuuli, ihan sekopäisenä
ellauri140.html on line 524: Her filthy parbreake all the
pl ace defiled has. Sen paha laatta on kaikki paikat ryvettänyt.
ellauri140.html on line 530: And overflow each
pl aine and lowly dale: Sillä peittyy kaikki tasangot ja ismo alangot.
ellauri140.html on line 606: That path he kept which beaten was most
pl aine, Ja ne jatko tallatulla reitillä,
ellauri140.html on line 625: Sim
pl e in shew, and voyde of malice bad, Se näytti hyväntahtoiselta hölmöltä,
ellauri140.html on line 648: And shall you well reward to shew the
pl ace, Sulle hyvin jos näytät paikankin,
ellauri140.html on line 681: Far from resort of peo
pl e, that did pas Kaukana lomakeskuxista,
ellauri140.html on line 686: Thereby a Christall streame did gently
pl ay, Kristallivirrassa se sitä virutti,
ellauri140.html on line 696: For that old man of
pl easing wordes had store, Jeesusläppiä oli sillä iso varasto.
ellauri140.html on line 736: Awaite whereto their service he ap
pl yes, Ympyröitä kaljun päällä
ellauri140.html on line 776: No other noyse, nor peo
pl es troublous cryes, Ei mitään melua, mölyapinoiden huutoja,
ellauri140.html on line 845: The one upon his hardy head him
pl ast Toinen meni istumaan sen hellälle nupille,
ellauri140.html on line 846: And made him dreame of loves and lustfull
pl ay, Ja sai sen näkemään unia panohommista,
ellauri140.html on line 850: And to him
pl aynd, how that false winged boy, Ja näytti sille miten pikku jousimies
ellauri140.html on line 918: In secret anguish and unpittied
pl aint, Salaisessa angstisssa ja säälimättömässä tuskassa,
ellauri140.html on line 934: Her mournefull
pl aintes, beguiled of her art, Se lakkas valituxista, jotka oli teeskentelyä.
ellauri140.html on line 935: And fed with words that could not chuse but
pl ease, Ja kyllästyneenä sanoista, vaik mukavista sinänsä,
ellauri140.html on line 1007: Where that false cou
pl e were full closely ment Missä silikonipari on täydessä touhussa
ellauri140.html on line 1030: Had spread her pur
pl e robe through deawy aire, Ja levitti päällensä punaisen aamutakin,
ellauri140.html on line 1046: But every hill and dale, each wood and
pl aine, Ezi joka mäen, joka kurun, joka mezän ja suon.
ellauri140.html on line 1060: And in her many troubles did most
pl easure take. Ja sille hankki mielin määrin ikävyyxiä.
ellauri141.html on line 28:
OODEJA play:none">Oodeja
ellauri141.html on line 30:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/08/Fedor_Bronnikov_014.jpg/280px-Fedor_Bronnikov_014.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri141.html on line 56:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/22/Hackert%2C_Villa_des_Maecenas_und_Wasserf%C3%A4lle_in_Tivoli%2C_1783.jpg/800px-Hackert%2C_Villa_des_Maecenas_und_Wasserf%C3%A4lle_in_Tivoli%2C_1783.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri141.html on line 59: The great charm of Maecenas in his relation to the men of genius who formed his circle was his sim
pl icity, cordiality and sincerity. Although not particular in the choice of some of the associates of his
pl easures, he admitted none but men of worth to his intimacy, and when once admitted they were treated like equals.
ellauri141.html on line 77:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/86/Esquilino_-_Auditorium_Mecenate_01407.JPG/600px-Esquilino_-_Auditorium_Mecenate_01407.JPG" height="200px" />
ellauri141.html on line 109:
Quintus Horatius Flaccus (8th of December, Ab Urbe Condita 689, B. C. 65 - 27th of November, B. C. 8) was born at or near Venusia (Venosa), in the Apennines, on the borders of Lucania and Apulia. His father was a freedman, having, as his name proves, been the slave of some person of the Horatia gens. As Horace im
pl ies that he himself was ingenuus, his father must have obtained his freedom before his birth. He afterwards followed the calling of a coactor, a collector of money in some way or other, it is not known in what. He made, in this capacity, enough to purchase an estate, probably a small one, near the above town, where the poet was born. We hear nothing of his mother, except that Horace speaks of both his parents with affection. His father, probably seeing signs of talent in him as a child, was not content to have him educated at a provincial school, but took him (at what age he does not say, but probably about twelve) to Rome, where he became a pupil of Orbilius Pupillus, who had a school of much note, attended by boys of good family, and whom Horace remembered all his life as an irritable teacher, given unnecessarily to the use of the rod. With him he learnt grammar, the earlier Latin authors, and Homer. He attended other masters (of rhetoric, poetry, and music perhaps), as Roman boys were wont, and had the advantage (to which he afterwards looked back with gratitude) of his father’s care and moral training during this part of his education. It was usual for young men of birth and ability to be sent to Athens, to finish their education by the study of Greek literature and philosophy under native teachers; and Horace went there too, at what age is not known, but probably when he was about twenty. Whether his father was alive at that time, or dead, is uncertain. If he went to Athens at twenty, it was in B. C. 45, the year before Julius Cæsar was assassinated. After that event, Brutus and Cassius left Rome and went to Greece. Foreseeing the struggle that was before them, they got round them many of the young men at that time studying at Athens, and Horace was appointed tribune in the army of Brutus, a high command, for which he was not qualified. He went with Brutus into Asia Minor, and finally shared his defeat at Philippi, B. C. 42. He makes humorous allusion to this defeat in his Ode to Pompeius Varus (ii. 7). After the battle he came to Italy, having obtained permission to do so, like many others who were willing to give up a desperate cause and settle quietly at home. His patrimony, however, was forfeited, and he seems to have had no means of subsistence, which induced him to em
pl oy himself in writing verses, with the view, perhaps, of bringing himself into notice, rather than for the purpose of making money by their sale. By some means he managed to get a
pl ace as scriba in the Quæstor’s office, whether by purchase or interest does not appear. In either case, we must suppose he contrived soon to make friends, though he could not do so by the course he pursued, without also making many enemies. His Satires are full of allusions to the enmity his verses had raised up for him on all hands. He became acquainted, among other literary persons, with Virgil and Varius, who, about three years after his return (B. C. 39), introduced him to Mæcenas, who was careful of receiving into his circle a tribune of Brutus, and one whose writings were of a kind that was new and unpopular. He accordingly saw nothing of Horace for nine months after his introduction to him. He then sent for him (B. C. 38), and from that time continued to be his patron and warmest friend.
ellauri141.html on line 111: At his house, probably, Horace became intimate with Polio, and the many persons of consideration whose friendship he appears to have enjoyed. Through Mæcenas, also, it is probable Horace was introduced to Augustus; but when that happened is uncertain. In B. C. 37, Mæcenas was deputed by Augustus to meet M. Antonius at Brundisium, and he took Horace with him on that journey, of which a detailed account is given in the fifth Satire of the first book. Horace appears to have parted from the rest of the company at Brundisium, and perhaps returned to Rome by Tarentum and Venusia. (See S. i. 5, Introduction.) Between this journey and B. C. 32, Horace received from his friend the present of a small estate in the valley of the Digentia (Licenza), situated about thirty-four miles from Rome, and fourteen from Tibur, in the Sabine country. Of this property he gives a description in his Epistle to Quintius (i. 16), and he appears to have lived there a part of every year, and to have been fond of the
pl ace, which was very quiet and retired, being four miles from the nearest town, Varia (Vico Varo), a municipium perhaps, but not a
pl ace of any importance. During this interval he continued to write Satires and Epodes, but also, it appears probable, some of the Odes, which some years later he published, and others which he did not publish. These compositions, no doubt, were seen by his friends, and were pretty well known before any of them were collected for publication. The first book of the Satires was published probably in B. C. 35, the Epodes in B. C. 30, and the second book of Satires in the following year, when Horace was about thirty-five years old. When Augustus returned from Asia, in B. C. 29, and closed the gates of Janus, being the acknowledged head of the republic, Horace appeared among his most hearty adherents. He wrote on this occasion one of his best Odes (i. 2), and em
pl oyed his pen in forwarding those reforms which it was the first object of Augustus to effect. (See Introduction to C. ii. 15.) His most striking Odes appear, for the most part, to have been written after the establishment of peace. Some may have been written before, and probably were. But for some reason it would seem that he gave himself more to lyric poetry after his thirty-fifth year than he had done before. He had most likely studied the Greek poets while he was at Athens, and some of his imitations may have been written early. If so, they were most probably improved and polished, from time to time, (for he must have had them by him, known perhaps only to a few friends, for many years,) till they became the graceful specimens of artificial composition that they are. Horace continued to em
pl oy himself in this kind of writing (on a variety of subjects, convivial, amatory, political, moral,—some original, many no doubt suggested by Greek poems) till B. C. 24, when there are reasons for thinking the first three books of the Odes were published. During this period, Horace appears to have passed his time at Rome, among the most distinguished men of the day, or at his house in the country, paying occasional visits to Tibur, Præneste, and Baiæ, with indifferent health, which required change of air. About the year B. C. 26 he was nearly killed by the falling of a tree, on his own estate, which accident he has recorded in one of his Odes (ii. 13), and occasionally refers to; once in the same stanza with a storm in which he was nearly lost off Cape Palinurus, on the western coast of Italy. When this happened, nobody knows. After the publication of the three books of Odes, Horace seems to have ceased from that style of writing, or nearly so; and the only other compositions we know of his having produced in the next few years are metrical Epistles to different friends, of which he published a volume probably in B. C. 20 or 19. He seems to have taken up the study of the Greek philosophical writers, and to have become a good deal interested in them, and also to have been a little tired of the world, and disgusted with the jealousies his reputation created. His health did not improve as he grew older, and he put himself under the care of Antonius Musa, the emperor’s new physician. By his advice he gave up, for a time at least, his favorite Baiæ. But he found it necessary to be a good deal away from Rome, especially in the autumn and winter.
ellauri141.html on line 113: In B. C. 17, Augustus celebrated the Ludi Seculares, and Horace was required to write an Ode for the occasion, which he did, and it has been preserved. This circumstance, and the credit it brought him, may have given his mind another leaning to Ode-writing, and have helped him to produce the fourth book, a few pieces in which may have been written at any time. It is said that Augustus particularly desired Horace to publish another book of Odes, in order that those he wrote upon the victories of Drusus and Tiberius (4 and 14) might appear in it. The latter of these Odes was not written, probably, till B. C. 13, when Augustus returned from Gaul. If so, the book was probably published in that year, when Horace was fifty-two. The Odes of the fourth book show no diminution of power, but the reverse. There are none in the first three books that surpass, or perhaps equal, the Ode in honor of Drusus, and few superior to that which is addressed to Lollius. The success of the first three books, and the honor of being chosen to compose the Ode at the Ludi Seculares, seem to have given him encouragement. There are no incidents in his life during the above period recorded or alluded to in his poems. He lived five years after the publication of the fourth book of Odes, if the above date be correct, and during that time, I think it probable, he wrote the Epistles to Augustus and Florus which form the second book; and having conceived the intention of writing a poem on the art and progress of poetry, he wrote as much of it as appears in the Epistle to the Pisones which has been preserved among his works. It seems, from the Epistle to Florus, that Horace at this time had to resist the urgency of friends begging him to write, one in this style and another in that, and that he had no desire to gratify them and to sacrifice his own ease to a pursuit in which it is
pl ain he never took any great delight. He was likely to bring to it less energy as his life was drawing prematurely to a close, through infirmities either contracted or aggravated during his irrational campaigning with Brutus, his inaptitude for which he appears afterwards to have been perfectly aware of. He continued to ap
pl y himself to the study of moral philosophy till his death, which took
pl ace, according to Eusebius, on the 27th of November, B. C. 8, in the fifty-seventh year of his age, and within a few days of its com
pl etion. Mæcenas died the same year, also towards the close of it; a coincidence that has led some to the notion, that Horace hastened his own death that he might not have the pain of surviving his patron. According to Suetonius, his death (which he
pl aces after his fifty-ninth year) was so sudden, that he had not time to execute his will, which is opposed to the notion of suicide. The two friends were buried near one another “in extremis Esquiliis,” in the farthest part of the Esquiliæ, that is, probably, without the city walls, on the ground drained and laid out in gardens by Mæcenas.
ellauri141.html on line 127: Certat tergeminis tollere honoribus; Antaa a
pl oodeja seisaaltaan, isoja käsiä,
ellauri141.html on line 147: Seu rupit teretes Marsus aper
pl agas. Tai hurja mezäsika rynkää pöheiköstä.
ellauri141.html on line 209: The obscene qualities of some of the Epodes have repulsed even scholars. Suetonius recorded some gossip about Horace's sexual activities late in life, involving mirrors. William Thackeray produced a version of Odes 1.38 in which Horace's questionable 'boy' became 'Lucy', and Gerard Manley Hopkins translated the boy "innocently" as 'child'. Horace was translated by Sir Theodore Martin (biographer of Prince Albert) but minus some ungentlemanly verses, such as the erotic Odes 1.25 and Epodes 8 and 12. Translators historically excluded the problem poems 8 and 12, but also the far less obscene but ex
pl icitly gay 11. Philip Francis (1746) and Bulwer Lytton (1870) omit the problem poems from their translations. Niin teki myös Eero Kivikari. Suuhun myös peräpäähän teitä pukkaan. Irrumabo ego vos et pedicabo. Quos ego!
ellauri141.html on line 216: dis
pl icent nexae philyra coronae, Pyllistävä, en pidä seppelen
ellauri141.html on line 220: sim
pl ici myrto nihil adlabores Pelkkään myrttiin tarvihe
ellauri141.html on line 255: frontem senectus exaret in age that wrinkles
pl ough your forehead,
ellauri141.html on line 286: pauperis ingenium' querebar ad
pl orans tibi, Valitin ja sua vonkasin, kun kuuma juoman
ellauri141.html on line 305: In Epode 11, the iambist regretfully recalls to his friend Pettius his infatuation with a girl named Inachia. The latter name does not occur elsewhere in extant Latin or Greek except in the very next poem in the Gedichtbuch, where the iambist’s older (ex-)lover com
pl ains of his sexual endurance with Inachia in contrast to his impotence with her (12.14-6). The name may suggest an ethnically Greek or Argive woman, or the Greek noms de lit regularly adopted by Italian meretrices. Yet, as some (but by no means all) commentators have noted, the name also evokes Io, the daughter of Inachus, jota Zeus bylsi härän hahmossa. Eli kyllä tässäkin yhden kynäilijän mielestä on jotain impotenssin käryä.
ellauri141.html on line 325: Inachiam ter nocte potes, mihi Semper ad unum For Elsie, a tri
pl e treat each evening; a solitary stunt
ellauri141.html on line 330: quam nova collibus arbor inhaeret. that stood stiffer than a sa
pl ing clinging to a crag!
ellauri141.html on line 331: muricibus Tyriis iteratae vellera lanae “Pelts of fleece double-dyed in Phoenician pur
pl e
ellauri141.html on line 339: "Of small stature, fond of the sun, prematurely grey, quick-tempered but easily
pl acated". Häntä vaivasi jonkinlainen silmätauti. Luonteeltaan hän näyttää olleen vilkas, iloinen ja leikkisä vanhapoika. Äkkipikainen, suuttui helposti mutta leppyi yhtä helposti. Bilbo Hobbitin doppelgängeri. The poet died at 56 years of age, not long after his friend Maecenas [or before? Opinions vary] near whose tomb he was laid to rest.
ellauri141.html on line 341: Pientä epäselvyyttä vallizee siitä oliko Flaccus sittenkään epikurolainen vaiko ize asiassa salastoalainen. Bisexuaaliko vaiko vaan asexuaali? Ehkä molempia. Satiiri tulee sanasta satura, roomalainen rosolli. Kaiken kaikkiaan voi sanoa että Flaccus oli vitun kuivakka, lähes Kimmo Koskenniemi-luokan pedantti. Häneltä puuttuu välittömyyttä, lainataxemme Eero Kivikaria. Vaikka toisinaan Horatius voi mennä suorastaan arveluttavan pitkälle, kuten esimerkixi epoodeissa 8 ja 12. Blame Horace’s snaky, samba-like rhythms and the culture that spawned the poems. Horace is fond of word
pl ays, including subtly allusive bilingual word
pl ays.
ellauri141.html on line 363: continuo fiat, malis tentigine rumpi? would you rather abstain and ex
pl ode?
ellauri141.html on line 368: Mut näyttää vähän siltä että Horatiuxen letku ei seissyt monta hetkeä. Se ehkä selittää ezen viisujen perussävy on tollanen tekosirkeä, puoliveteinen ja letkeä. Horace’s obsessions were music, sex, death and wine and crowns made from
pl ants.
ellauri141.html on line 388: Heus puer, digitos ex anu. St Jerome modelled an uncompromising response to the pagan Horace, observing: "What harmony can there be between Christ and the Devil? What has Horace to do with the Psalter?" The first English translator Thomas Drant
pl aced translations of Jeremiah and Horace side by side in Medicinable Morall, 1566. The Scot George Buchanan paraphrased the Psalms in a Horatian setting. John Keats echoed the opening of Horace's Epodes 14 in the opening lines of Ode to a Nightingale. Byron's famous lines from Childe Harold (Canto iv, 77) hit it on the nail:
ellauri141.html on line 397: His verses have offered a fund of mottoes, such as Integer vitae, Dulce et decorum, Heus puer digitos e vagina, Odi profanum vulgus, Sim
pl ex munditiis, S
pl endide mendax, Sapere aude, Nunc est bibendum, Carpe diem. Bibendum on se Michelinin autonrenkaista tehty ukkeli.
ellauri141.html on line 404: The solfege system (Do, Re, Mi), which is the theme of a song by the Von Trapp children, is just a small sam
pl e of Horace's all-pervasive influence on western culture, even among peo
pl e who might never have heard the name Quintus Horatius Flaccus. Horace was not just a superb literary craftsman, but a musician, songwriter and entertainer for the Roman elite, creating a new Latin idiom derived from Greek lyric song. A final chapter, "Horace, Guido and the Do-re-mi Mystery", the result of careful research and detective work, argues that Guido d'Arezzo, an eleventh-century Benedictine choirmaster, used the melody of Horace's Ode to Phyllis (alla) to invent the do-re-mi mnemonic, but ap
pl ied it to an eighth-century Hymn to John the Baptist ("Ut queant laxis") by Paul the Deacon, keeping the true source secret. A musical comparison of the Horatian melody and Guido's version of "ut-re-mi" is included. Lyons' verse translation of the Odes was named a Financial Times Book of the Year (1996) and was welcomed as 'a wonderful rendering of one of the great, central poets in the European tradition.'
ellauri141.html on line 406: If human life were com
pl ete without faith, without enthusiasm, without energy, Horace would be the perfect interpreter of human life. Ki
pl ing wrote a famous parody of the Odes, satirising their stylistic idiosyncrasies and especially the extraordinary syntax, but he also used Horace's Roman patriotism as a model for British imperialism. Siitä enemmän tuonnempana.
ellauri141.html on line 412:
pl enus Albani cadus, est in horto, loota super punkkua puutarhassa,
ellauri141.html on line 442: spes et exem
pl um grave praebet ales toiveita, se tarjoo pahan esimerkin:
ellauri141.html on line 457:
Kipl ingin mielirunoilija oli Horatius
ellauri141.html on line 459:
Joseph Rudyard Kipl ing (30. joulukuuta 1865 Bombay, Brittiläinen Intia - 18. tammikuuta 1936 Lontoo, Yhdistynyt kuningaskunta) oli englantilainen kirjailija, runoilija, novellisti ja toimittaja. Hänet tunnetaan parhaiten Disney-piirretystä Viidakkokirja (1894) ja Intiaan sijoittuvasta vakoiluromaanistaan Kim (1901). Ki
pl ingin jälkeensä jättämä tuotanto on laaja ja monipuolinen.
ellauri141.html on line 460: Tunnettuja Ki
pl ingin runoja ovat Mandalay (1890), Gunga Din (1890), Valkoisen miehen taakka (The White Man’s Burden) (1899) ja Jos– (If–) (1910). Ki
pl ing tunnetaan erityisesti englanninkielisessä maailmassa yhtenä lastenkirjallisuuden suurista nimistä ja lahjakkaana tarinankertojana. [Lähde vittuun?] Ki
pl ingin tuotannon keskeisiä teoksia ovat myös Norsunlapsi (The Elephant's Child) ja Meren urhoja (Captains Courageous).
ellauri141.html on line 462: Ki
pl ing sai ensimmäisenä englanninkielisenä kirjailijana Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1907. Hän on yhä edelleen nuorin palkinnon koskaan saanut kirjailija (42v). Mikähän poliittinen tilanne oli siinä takana?
ellauri141.html on line 464: Ki
pl ing muistetaan myös vankkana Brittiläisen imperiumin ja imperialismin tukijana. Maailmankatsomukseltaan hän oli konservatiivinen ja isänmaallinen britti, joka puolusti Brittiläisen kansainyhteisön kokonaisuutta ja vastusti bolševismia. Esimerkiksi hän ei kannattanut Irlannin itsehallintoa (Home Rule) ja tuki voimakkaasti maansa osallistumista ensimmäiseen maailmansotaan. Ki
pl ingille tarjottiin Brittiläisen imperiumin ritarin arvoa, mutta hellä nuppi kieltäytyi sankaroimasta.
ellauri141.html on line 466: Ki
pl ing syntyi 30. joulukuuta 1865 Bombayssa, Brittiläisessä Intiassa. Hänen äitinsä oli metodistipastorin tytär Alice Ki
pl ing (o.s. MacDonald) ja isänsä bombaylaisen taidekoulun rehtori ja professori John Lockwood Ki
pl ing. John ja Alice olivat ensimmäisen kerran tavanneet 1863 Rudyardjärvellä Rudyardin kylässä Staffordshiressa. He avioituivat ja muuttivat 1865 Intiaan, jossa esikoispoika syntyi pian muuton jälkeen. Poika sai etunimensä vanhempiensa ensimmäisen kohtaamispaikan mukaan. Ki
pl ingin syntymäpaikalla Sir J. J.:n käyttötaiteiden instituutin kampusalueella Mumbaissa (entinen Bombay) on hänen syntymästään kertova kyltti. You are here.
ellauri141.html on line 468: Rudyard ja hänen kolmevuotias pikkusiskonsa Alice (”Trix”) lähetettiin koulutettavaksi ja kasvatettavaksi Englantiin. Ki
pl ingin sisarukset saapuivat Portsmouthiin, jossa he päätyivät pariskunnan ylläpitämään, Intiassa asuvien brittilasten kouluttamiseen erikoistuneeseen perhekotiin. Nämä kasvatusvanhemmat olivat Lorne Lodgessa asuneet kapteeni ja rouva Holloway, jonka kohtelua seuraavan kuuden vuoden aikana Rudyard kuvaili julmaksi ja halveksuvaksi. Ki
pl ing kuvaili kokemuksiaan laskelmoiduksi kidutukseksi niin uskonnollisesti kuin tieteellisesti.
ellauri141.html on line 470: Vuonna 1878 Rudyard Ki
pl ing hyväksyttiin oppilaaksi upseerien pojille tarkoitettuun United Services College -yksityiskouluun Devoniin. Koulu oli armeijapalvelukseen valmistava, ja se oli aluksi rankka kokemus Rudyardille, mutta johti lopulta vahvojen ystävyyssiteiden solmimiseen.
ellauri141.html on line 471: Koulun lopulla selvisi, että Ki
pl ingiltä puuttui akateemista kyvykkyyttä saada stipendi Oxfordin yliopistoon. Ki
pl ingistä tuli pienen paikallislehden Civil and Military Gazetten apulaispäätoimittaja Punjabissa.
ellauri141.html on line 472: Ki
pl ing siirtyi marraskuussa 1887 Gazetten paljon suurempaan sisarlehteen The Pioneeriin Allahabadiin. Siellä
ellauri141.html on line 473: Ki
pl ing jatkoi kirjoittamista kuumeisesti. The Pioneer irtisanoi Ki
pl ingin erään riidan jälkeen vuoden 1889 alussa.
ellauri141.html on line 476: Seuraavan kahden vuoden aikana hän julkaisi romaanin Valon kadotessa (The Light that Failed), sai hermoromahduksen ja tapasi amerikkalaisen kirjailijan ja kustantajan Wolcott Balestierin, jonka kanssa yhteistyössä hän kirjoitti romaanin The Naulahka (1892). Ki
pl ing lähti 1891 lääkäreidensä neuvosta merimatkalle vieraillakseen Etelä-Afrikassa, Australiassa, Uudessa-Seelannissa ja jälleen kerran Intiassa. Ki
pl ingin piti viettää joulu perheensä kanssa Intiassa, mutta kuultuaan Balestierin kuolleen lavantautiin hän päätti palata välittömästi Lontooseen. Ennen paluutaan hän oli sähkeitse pyytänyt Wollcottin siskon Caroline Starr Balestierin (1862–1939) kättä. ”Carrien” hän oli tavannut aiemmin ja hänellä oli ollut tämän kanssaan ilmeisesti ajoittainen romanssi.
ellauri141.html on line 478: Carrie Balestier oli 29-vuotias ja Rudyard Ki
pl ing 26-vuotias kun he avioituivat 18. tammikuuta 1892 Lontoossa. Häät pidettiin Lontoon All Souls Churchissa, ja Henry James luovutti morsiamen vain vähän käytettynä.
ellauri141.html on line 481: Tässä mökissä Ki
pl ing teki myös ensimmäiset luonnostelmansa Viidakkokirjasta. Tuli ahdasta ja ne rakensivat oman talon jonka nimexi tuli Naulakha (nimi tuli oikein tällä kerralla). Talo on edelleen pystyssä Dummerstonin Ki
pl ing Roadilla, viisi kilometriä pohjoiseen Brattleborosta. Se on iso, syrjäinen ja tumman vihreä talo, jossa on pärekatto, iso parveke ja erkkerit. Taloaan Ki
pl ing kutsui ”laivaksi” ja se toi hänelle ”auringonpaistetta ja mielenrauhaa”. Vierailemassa kävi myös brittiläinen kirjailija Arthur Conan Doyle, joka toi mukanaan parin päivän vieraillulleen golf-mailansa ja antoi Ki
pl ingille pitkän golf-oppitunnin. Ki
pl ing vaikuttaa omaksuneen golfin peluun ja pelasi satunnaisesti paikallisen kongregationalistisen papin kanssa ja pelasi jopa punaisiksi värjätyillä palloilla maan ollessa lumen peitossa.
ellauri141.html on line 483: Helmikuussa 1896 syntyi perheen toinen tytär Elsie Ki
pl ing. Useiden elämäkertojen mukaan Ki
pl ingien avioliitto ei enää ollut niin huoleton ja spontaani. Vaikka he tulivat aina säilymään uskollisina toisilleen, he vaikuttivat irtautuneen kumpikin omiin erillisiin rooleihinsa. Kirjeessään eräälle juuri kihlautuneelle ystävälleen 30-vuotias Ki
pl ing tarjosi tätä synkkää neuvoa: avioliitto pääasiassa opetti ”vakavampia hyveitä, kuten nöyryyttä, malttia, kuria ja harkintaa”.
ellauri141.html on line 484: Jenkkien ja brittien riitaannuttua Venezuelasta Ki
pl ingit pakkasivat nopeasti omaisuutensa ja lähtivät pois Yhdysvalloista. Syyskuusta 1896 lähtien Ki
pl ingit asuivat Torquayssa Devonin rannikolla. Talo sijaitsi rinteessä, ja siitä oli suora merinäköala. Ki
pl ing ei pitänyt uudesta talostaan, joka oli hänen mukaansa suunniteltu niin, että se jätti asukkaansa masentuneiksi ja surumielisiksi. Tästä huolimatta Ki
pl ing onnistui säilymään tuotteliaana ja sosiaalisesti aktiivisena.
ellauri141.html on line 485: Ki
pl ing oli jo tähän aikaan arvossa pidetty ja kuuluisa kermaperse.
ellauri141.html on line 487: Alicen siskoista Georgiana avioitui taiteilija Edward Burne-Jonesin ja Agnes taiteilija Edward Poynterin kanssa. Ki
pl ingin tunnetuin sukulainen oli hänen serkkunsa Stanley Baldwin, joka toimi Britannian konservatiivipääministerinä kolme kertaa 1920- ja 1930-luvuilla.
ellauri141.html on line 490: Koulutarinakokoelman Minä ja kumppanit (Stalky & Co.), nuoret päähenkilöt ovat besserwissereitä ja isänmaallisuuteen sekä auktoriteetteihin kyynisesti suhtautuvia. Perheen mukaan Ki
pl ing tykkäsi lukea Minä ja kumppanit -tarinoita perheelleen ääneen ja remahti aina välillä nauramaan omille vitseilleen.
ellauri141.html on line 491: Etelä-Aahrikasssa Kapmaan poliitikot ottivat lämpimästi vastaan vierailijan, kuten Rhodes, Alfred Milner ja Leander Starr Jameson. Ki
pl ing syvensi ystävyyttä heidän kanssaan ja alkoi miesten sekä heidän politiikkansa ihailijaksi. Palattuaan Englantiin Ki
pl ing kirjoitti Britannian etuja buurisodassa tukevaa runoutta.
ellauri141.html on line 492: Vuonna 1902 Ki
pl ing osti vuonna 1634 rakennetun kartanon nimeltä Bateman’s, joka sijaitsee maaseudulla Burwashissa, East Sussexissa. Tilan koko oli 130 000 m² mukaan lukien ympäröivät rakennukset ja mylly , ja Ki
pl ing maksoi siitä 9 300 puntaa, joka nykymyyntihintana vastaisi 735 000 puntaa. Talossa ei ollut kylpyhuonetta, juoksevaa vettä yläkerrassa eikä sähköjä, mutta silti Ki
pl ing piti siitä paljon, kuten hän marraskuussa 1902 lähettämässä kirjeessään sanoi: ”Katsokaa meitä, harmaakivisen talon laillisia omistajia – A.D. 1634 lukee oviparrussa, paneloitu, vanha tammiportaikko ja kaikki koskematonta ja aitoa. Se on hyvä ja rauhallinen paikka. Me olemme rakastaneet sitä ensi silmäyksestä lähtien”.
ellauri141.html on line 494: Vuoden 1899 Yhdysvaltain-turneella Ki
pl ing ja hänen tyttärensä Josephine sairastuivat keuhkokuumeeseen, johon Josephine lopulta menehtyi.
ellauri141.html on line 495: Ki
pl ingin suosio oli huipussaan 1900–luvun alussa. Vuonna 1907 Rudyard Ki
pl ing sai kirjallisuuden Nobel-palkinnon.
ellauri141.html on line 496: Ki
pl ingin 18-vuotias poika John Ki
pl ing kaatui syyskuussa 1915 Loosin taistelussa ensimmäisessä maailmansodassa. John oli hylätty kahdesti likinäkönsä takia, mutta brittiarmeijan ylipäällikkö ja irlantilaiskaartien eversti Roberts oli Rudyard Ki
pl ingin henkilökohtainen hyvä ystävä. Hänen pyynnöstään John hyväksyttiin irlantilaiskaarteihin. John Ki
pl ing valmistui upseeriksi vänrikin arvolla.
ellauri141.html on line 502: George Beresford ('Turkey'), who shared a study with Ki
pl ing and Dunsterville ('Stalky'), reports Ki
pl ing as bad at Latin and with no Greek. Little of his education stuck. His reputation at school was of someone who was imprecise about scansion, long or short syllables and syntax, and who made wild and funny guesses at the sense.
ellauri141.html on line 505: In the classics, that is Latin, he was no more than an ordinary boy, but he gave the impression that if he thought it essential for his literary ambitions, he would tackle it to good purpose. But somehow he did not so think, and he made no effort to acquire a vocabulary or memorise Latin words—consequently, his construes were sometimes a succession of errs and hums waiting and hoping for the form-master kindly to sup
pl y the missing translation. (5)
ellauri141.html on line 507: Ki
pl ing himself confessed that ‘every Latin quantity was an arbitrary mystery’ to him, that his teacher Crofts ‘loathed me as to Latin’ and that he had construed the beginning of the Cleopatra Ode (1.37) very badly on one occasion. It was M'Turk/Beresford who composed the Latin elegiacs translating Gray’s Elegy which Stalky and Beetle needed to prepare.
ellauri141.html on line 513: Ki
pl ing encountered him as a schoolboy, and wrote in Something of Myself (p.33) that C----, his classics master ('King' in Stalky & Co.) ...taught me to loath Horace for two years, to forget him for twenty, and then to love him for the rest of my days and through many slee
pl ess nights.
ellauri141.html on line 521: Ki
pl ing recognised that Horace was untranslatable. For exam
pl e, he wrote to Courtauld to thank him for a copy of the third edition of The Odes and Epodes of Horace: metrical translations … selected by S. A. Courtauld.
ellauri141.html on line 524: This had been a worry in the second century BC, when a bill had been brought in to extend citizenship to Latins and Ki
pl ing would have picked up what Juvenal had said about ‘the hungry Greekling’ (Graeculus esuriens) and the Syrian Orontes flowing into the Tiber.
ellauri141.html on line 532: The Fifth Book of Horace’s Odes: Q. Horati Flacci Carminum Liber Quintus a Rudyardo Ki
pl ing et Carolo Graves Anglice Redditus (250)
ellauri141.html on line 533: The spoof book of late Horace (it refers to contemporary politicians such as Lloyd George, gas masks, land girls, daylight saving, spiritualism, canteens and so on) which came out in 1920, was inspired by a long tradition in English literature and by Ki
pl ing’s early imitation odes and Charles Graves’s Hawarden Horace (1894) and More Hawarden Horace (1896, with a delightful introduction by T. E. Page), where felicitous modernising English versions of the Odes (and an Epode) are put in the mouth of Gladstone (251) . A[lfred] D[enis] Godley, for one, had often imagined Greek and Roman authors as still alive and commenting on nineteenth- and twentieth-century Oxford and England. (252) Ki
pl ing delighted in humorous verse. In 1917 he had enjoyed Maurice Baring’s Translations (found in a common
pl ace book) (253) .
ellauri141.html on line 534: the main contributor of English verses was Charles Graves. He gave the credit for the idea to Ki
pl ing.
ellauri141.html on line 561: certo futuri quid
pl aceat Deo, My steward (friend but slave) brings round
ellauri141.html on line 562: fert ligna sup
pl endo focorum Logs for my fire.
ellauri141.html on line 566: The genesis of Horace Odes, Book V was in the brains of Ki
pl ing. It occurred to him about the blackest time of the last war, end of 1917 and early months of 1918, as a means of keeping up one's spirits and distracting our thoughts from present troubles, and he wrote to me outlining his
pl an and making many admirable suggestions for subjects of the sham odes. (262)
ellauri141.html on line 567: Graves wrote for The Spectator and for Punch and his comic histories must have been to Ki
pl ing’s taste. He collaborated with E. V. Lucas, also a Punch journalist, with whom Ki
pl ing had corresponded at least since 1906. (263)‘He was the most exhilarating of companions, radiating vitality, goodwill and interest in the other man and his concerns’.
ellauri141.html on line 569: The ‘editor’ of the Latin text was the clever versifier A. D. Godley of Oxford. (267) He contributed graceful acknowledgements (268) and a hilarious preface about the (fictitious) manuscripts, which parodies the standard praefatio of an Oxford Classical Text (brown-covered in those days like the spoof). (269) There is a learned apparatus criticus about disputed or variant ms. readings. He did the Latin poems, together with his Oxford colleagues and friends John Powell (270) and Ronald Knox (271) and the Etonian and former Cambridge undergraduate A. B. Ramsay. (272) There is an appendix of alternative Latin versions which the translators obviously could not bear to waste. Ki
pl ing contributed a schoolboyish prose version of ‘The Pro-consuls’: ‘the sixth ode, as it seems, rendered into English prose by a scholiast of uncertain period’, which starts:
ellauri141.html on line 573: This, though now ascribed to a pedant rather than a boy, is clearly what Ki
pl ing had mentioned to Fletcher earlier:
ellauri141.html on line 575: … I’ve got a new Fifth Booker whereof Hankinson Ma. is preparing the translation. It came out in the Times ever so long ago [1905] under the title The Pro-Consuls but I perceive now that Horace wrote it. Rather a big effort for him and on a higher
pl ane than usual – unless he’d been deliberately flattering some friend in Government. I’ll send it along.
ellauri141.html on line 577: When the book came out, it fooled the Scotsman. Ki
pl ing regretted only the facetious names of some universities, professors etc. in Godley’s preface: if they had been serious, others too would have thought the collection authentic.
ellauri141.html on line 635:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/ba/K-1272-113-_Seminaarin_100-vuotisjuhlat%2C_kirjailija_Hilda_Huntuvuori_esitt%C3%A4%C3%A4_tervehdyksen_tervetuliaisjuhlassa_8.6.1963%2C_1963.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri141.html on line 663:
ploads/2018/06/hilda-huntuvuori-768x512.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri141.html on line 701: ---- Iltaisin TPS:n nuoret kokoontuivat Kupittaan kisakentälle pelaamaan pesäpalloa, heittämään kuraa, lyömään heilaa ja juoksemaan hevosenleikkiä." Horse
pl ay on the float. Kupittaan urheilupuisto oli Huntuvuoren elinaikana kukoistuksessaan 1890-luvun parannustöiden ansioista. Lukijat kyllä nauroivat mutta silti pitivät.
ellauri141.html on line 726:
ploads/2014/02/7saimi-ja-Hilda-Akaa-seuran-arkisto-3-300x279.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri141.html on line 737: Kehittelen tässä edelleen ajatusta siitä mikä abrahamilaisissa uskonnoissa on vikana. Ja se on tämä: Niiden jumala on tollanen vastaansanomaton diktaattori, ja diktaattorit
pl us niiden kannattajat tunnistaa siitä että ne jaxaa kehua izeään aivan ku
pl ixi: ne on kiiltäviä ja täydellisiä, kaikin puolin lyömättömiä, niiden hommia ei tule kyseenalaistaa, tai tulee nyrkistä ja kovaa. Enintään niillä on täsmälleen yxi (1) vihulainen, joka on yhtä mahdottoman paha kuin tää toinen on käsittämätön hyvis, ja tietysti tää valkohattuinen hyvis päihittää sen pahan jos ei het niin loppupeleissä.
ellauri141.html on line 752:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/10/Saint-John_Perse_1960.jpg" height="200px"/>
ellauri141.html on line 755:
Alexis Leger (pronounced [ləʒe]; 31 May 1887 – 20 September 1975), better known by his pseudonym Saint-John Perse (French: [pɛʁs]; also Saint-Leger Leger),[1] was a French poet-di
pl omat, awarded the Nobel Prize in Literature in 1960 "for the soaring flight and evocative imagery of his poetry." He was a major French di
pl omat from 1914 to 1940, after which he lived primarily in the United States until 1967.
ellauri141.html on line 757: Alexis Leger was born in Pointe-à-Pitre, Guadeloupe. His great-grandfather, a solicitor, had settled in Guadeloupe in 1815. His grandfather and father were also solicitors; his father was also a member of the city council. The Leger family owned two
pl antations, one of coffee (La Joséphine) and the other of sugar (Bois-Debout).
ellauri141.html on line 759: In 1897, Hégésippe Légitimus, the first native Guadeloupan elected president of the Guadeloupe General Council, took office with a vindictive agenda towards colonists. The Leger family returned to metropolitan France in 1899 and settled in Pau. The young Alexis felt like an expatriate and spent much of his time hiking, fencing, riding horses and sailing in the Atlantic. He passed the baccalauréat with honours and began studying law at the University of Bordeaux. When his father died in 1907, the resulting strain on his family's finances led Leger to temporarily interrupt his studies, but he eventually com
pl eted his degree in 1910.
ellauri141.html on line 763: While in China, Leger had written his first extended poem Anabase, publishing it in 1924 under the pseudonym "Saint-John Perse", which he em
pl oyed for the rest of his life. He then published nothing for two decades, not even a re-edition of his debut book, as he believed it inappropriate for a di
pl omat to publish fiction. After Briand's death in 1932, Leger served as Inspector Leger under Comissaire Maigret (Quai d'Orfevres) until 1940. Within the Foreign Office he led the optimist faction that believed that Germany was unstable and that if Britain and France stood up to Hitler, he would back down. Har har. A gifted di
pl omat.
ellauri141.html on line 765: During his American exile, he wrote his long poems Exil, Vents, Pluies, Neiges, Amers, and Chroniques. He remained in the US long after the end of the war. He travelled extensively, observing nature and enjoying the friendship of US Attorney General Francis Biddle and his spouse, philanthropist Beatrice Chanler, and author Katherine Garrison Chapin. He was on good terms with the UN Secretary General and author Dag Hammarskjöld whose
pl ain crashed in suspicious circumstances in 1961, just after Pink Panther got his Nobel prize. Foul
pl ay?
ellauri141.html on line 767: In 1957, American friends gave him a villa at Giens, Provence, France. He then s
pl it his time between France and the United States. In 1958, he married the American Dorothy Milburn Russell.
ellauri141.html on line 781: Vittu mitä pyörittelyä. Ihan Löden kirkkohissan aineen tasoa. Mitähän runoilija on oikein tarkoittanut tässä? Ensinnäkään Bernie ei tiedä onko tää runo vaiko kertomus. Saattaahan olla vielä muitakin mahdollisuuxia. Jos se on vaikka ostoslista. No ei, Bernie ei usko genreihin. (Tuli tossa muuten mieleen, että Raamatun kertomus Ruthista on oikeastaan romcom. Siinä on kaikki sen genren tuntomerkit.) Tarvitaan uusia muotoja, uusia muotoja tarvitaan. Jossei niitä saada, se on sama kuin ei olisi koko taidetta. (Jussi Jurkka, p.c.) No ei, Bernhard päätyy ehdottamaan, että koska
pl öräyxessä ei ole havaittavissa minkään maakunnan juonta, se onkin lyyrinen proosaruno.
ellauri141.html on line 787: « Anabase est une sorte de carrefour à l'intersection entre deux modes d'écriture : celle de l'art « classique » (ordre, harmonie
pl énitude) et celle de la « modernité » (désarticulation, déconstruction, voire chaos). »
ellauri141.html on line 800: Dag Hammarskjöld was committed to the arts. Though temperamentally a loner, and introvert, and a bachelor throughout his life (oliko se homo? Det finns inga bevis för att Dag Hammarskjöld var homosexuell. Misstankar verkar dock ha funnits: Eftersom han levde ensam började rykten spridas om att han skulle vara homosexuell och hans motståndare använde detta för att smutskasta honom), he would invite intellectuals and artists, the best of New York’s bohemia, to his Upper East Side apartment where he kept a pet, an African monkey called Greenback. Peo
pl e he invited to his generous dinners included the poet Carl Sandburg, the novelist John Steinbeck, the poet WH Auden, the di
pl omat George Kennan. Auden was the translator of Hammarskjöld’s posthumously published book of observations, ideas and poems called Waymarks. Hammarskjöld used his influence to get the poet Ezra Pound out of mental hospital. Back in Sweden, he inherited his father’s chair at the Swedish academy when the man died in 1953. The Swedish academy is the body that awards the Nobel Prize in literature. Hammarskjöld was instrumental in getting the rather obscure but doubtless brilliant French poet Saint John Perse his Nobel prize in 1960. He would sketch out the arguments for Perse’s candidacy during translation breaks at UN Security Council meetings.
ellauri142.html on line 32:
AUM!! play:none">Indoeuroviisuja
ellauri142.html on line 49: Count Pyotr "Markku" Kirillovich Bezukhov (/bɛ.zjuːˈkɒv/; Russian: Пьер Безу́хов, Пётр Кири́ллович Безу́хов) is a central fictional character and the main protagonist of Leo Tolstoy's 1869 novel War and Peace. He is the favourite out of several illegitimate sons of the wealthy nobleman Count Kirill Vladimirovich Bezukhov, one of the richest peo
pl e in the Russian Empire. Markku is best friends with Andrei Bollocksky. Tolstoy based Markku on himself more than any other War and Peace character.
ellauri142.html on line 53: At the opening of the novel, Markku is a young man who has recently returned to Russia to seek a career after com
pl eting his education abroad. Although a well-meaning, kind hearted young man, he is awkward and out of
pl ace in the Russian high society in whose circles he starts to move. Markku, though intelligent, is not dominated by reason, as his friend Prince Andrei Nikolayevich Balkongsky is. His lack of direction leads him to fall in with a group of profligate young men like Anatole Kuragin and Dolokhov whose pranks and heavy drinking cause mild scandals. After a particularly outrageous escapade in which a policeman is strapped to the back of a bear and thrown into a river, Markku is sent away from St. Petersburg. What happened to the poor bear?
ellauri142.html on line 55: Markku's life changes after he becomes the sole heir to his father's vast estate, and his position in society is changed from that of an illegitimate son to the new Count Bezukhov. His inability to control his emotions and sexual passions lead him into a marriage with the vapid but sexually beautiful Princess Kristina, a match which her self-serving father, Prince Carl Erik, sets up to secure his access to Markku's newly acquired vast fortune. Kristina is not in love with Markku, and has affairs. From jealousy, Markku shoots his suspected lover, Dolokhov, in a duel. He is distraught at having committed such a crime and eventually separates from Kristina and then
becomes a Freemason . His madhat escape into the city of Moscow and his subsequent obsessive belief that he is destined to be Napoleon’s mistress show his submission to irrational impulses. Yet his
search for meaning in his life and for how to overcome his emotions are a central theme of the novel. He eventually finds love and marriage with Pirkko Hiekkala, becomes a ladies shoes salesman called Al Bundy and their marriage is perhaps the culmination of a life of moral and spiritual questioning. They have four children: three boys and one girl. Correction, one extremely good-looking
pl atinum blonde girl and one about equally gifted son.
ellauri142.html on line 57:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri142.html on line 67:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/34/Lev_Nikolayevich_Tolstoy_1848.jpg/220px-Lev_Nikolayevich_Tolstoy_1848.jpg" />
ellauri142.html on line 71:
Count Lev Nikolayevich Tolstoy (/ˈtoʊlstɔɪ/; Russian: Лев Николаевич Толстой, 28 August 1828 – 7 November 1910), usually referred to in English as Leo Tolstoy, was a Russian writer who is regarded as one of the greatest authors of all time. He received nominations for the Nobel Prize in Literature every year from 1902 to 1906 and for the Nobel Peace Prize in 1901, 1902, and 1909. That he never won is a major controversy. Instead, Rudyard Ki
pl ing got the medal 1907. What the fuck?
ellauri142.html on line 77: The Tolstoys were a well-known family of old Russian nobility who traced their ancestry to a mythical nobleman named Indris described by Pyotr Tolstoy as arriving "from Nemec, from the lands of Caesar" (Lithuania, from the sound of it) to Chernigov in 1353 along with his two sons Litvinos (or Litvonis) and Zimonten (or Zigmont) and a dozen or maybe 3000 peo
pl e. Indris was then converted to Eastern Orthodoxy, under the name of Leonty, and his sons as Konstantin and Feodor. Konstantin's grandson Andrei Kharitonovich was nicknamed Tolstoy (fatso) by Vasily II of Moscow after he moved from Chernigov to Moscow.
ellauri142.html on line 87: His experience in the army, and two trips around Europe in 1857 and 1860–61 converted Tolstoy from a dissolute and privileged society author to a non-violent and spiritual
anarchist . Others who followed the same path were Markku Graae, Alexander Gerzen, Mikhail Bakunin and Peter Kropotkin. During his 1857 visit, Tolstoy suffered a public execution in Paris, a traumatic experience that marked the rest of his life. In a letter to his friend Vasily Botkin, Tolstoy wrote: "The truth is that the State is a conspiracy designed not only to ex
pl oit, but above all to corrupt its citizens ... Henceforth, I shall never serve any government anywhere.
ellauri142.html on line 89: No tässähän se vika oli! Ki
pl ing sentään oli väkevästi brittihallituksen puolella. Tolstoi heilui niitä vastaan Krimin sodassa, ja oli tollanen antifa anarkopasifisti sen jälkeenkin. Ruozalaiset oli taas kerran nuolemassa persettä joka oli niitä lähinnä.
ellauri142.html on line 91: Prize motivation: "in consideration of the power of observation, originality of imagination, virility of ideas and remarkable talent for narration which characterize the creations of this world-famous author." As a poet, short story writer, journalist and novelist, Rudyard Ki
pl ing described the British colonial empire in positive terms, which made his poetry popular in the British Army. Contemporary Great Britain appreciated him for his depictions of the British colony of India. The Jungle Book (1894) has made him known and loved by children throughout the world, especially thanks to Disney’s 1967 film adaptation.
ellauri142.html on line 93: Tolstoy's concept of ahimsa was bolstered when he read a German version of the Tirukkura. The Tirukkuṟa (Tamil: திருக்குறள், lit. 'sacred verses'), or shortly the Kura, is a classic Tamil language text consisting of 1,330 short cou
pl ets, or kura, of seven words each. The text is divided into three books with aphoristic teachings on virtue (aram), wealth (porul) and sex (inbam), respectively. The Kura is traditionally praised with epithets and alternate titles such as "the Tamil Veda" and "the divine book." Written on the foundations of ahimsa, it emphasizes non-violence and moral vegetarianism as highest virtues for an individual.
ellauri142.html on line 104: When di
pl omats and politicians joined the organization in the mid-1600s, the stonemason lodge movement began its climb as a stealthy phenomenon. If you were politically active and wanted to connect with the power structures of the times, you would do just about anything to become a member of The Masons.
ellauri142.html on line 108: The United States Masons, otherwise known as The Freemasons, were a highly political society in the 1700s. The first US lodge was opened in 1730 in New Jersey, where they initiated early
pl ans and strategies used to fight the British. With its growing vault of secrets, expanding political influence, and stealth missions, it was an exciting time to be a Freemason.
ellauri142.html on line 128: There is a frightening initiation ceremony that reenacts the construction of Solomon’s tem
pl e
ellauri142.html on line 143: Rituals help us physicalize our beliefs, desires, and commitments. For many, performing a weekly or monthly ritual is a profound physical, psychological or emotional workout. Rituals help peo
pl e connect to themselves, their chosen communities, and their Gods.
ellauri142.html on line 151: In most Masonic lodges, the Bible, the Quran, Talmud, and Vedas are prominently dis
pl ayed, which gives each member a holy text to reference and utilize during rites and rituals.
ellauri142.html on line 153: Solomon’s Tem
pl e is a substantial part of the rituals and symbolism found within Freemasonry. During membership initiation rites, portions of the story of the structure’s construction on the Tem
pl e Mount are reenacted.
ellauri142.html on line 157: Using the Pigpen cipher key shown in the exam
pl e above, the message "X MARKS THE
ellauri142.html on line 160:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/A-pigpen-message.svg/640px-A-pigpen-message.svg.png" />
ellauri142.html on line 164:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a5/Tem
pl eofrosycross.png/300px-Tem
pl eofrosycross.png" />
ellauri142.html on line 172:
ploads/2017/09/rommel_and_hitler_masonic_handshake.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri142.html on line 190: When it comes down to it, ritualizing our beliefs and networking with like-minded peo
pl e, even with a gender requirement, can be exciting, empowering, and life-enhancing. Mahaluu!
ellauri142.html on line 204:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri142.html on line 264: Humboldtin veljexiä oli 2, Alexander oli maantieteilijä, Wilhelm kielentutkija. Mulla on joku sen kielitieteen kirja hyllyssä. Joo Linguistic Variability & Intellectual Development. Pokkari. Onkohan se lyhennetty painos, Ei ole, vaikka lukuja on yhdistelty. Originally published in 1836 in the Royal Academy of Sciences of Berlin under the title
Ueber die Verschiedenheit des menschlichen Sprachbaues und ihren Einfluss auf die geistige Entwicklung des Menschengeschlechz . Esipuheen on kirjoittanut Alexander-veli. Von Humboldt´s style is not a sim
pl e one for modern ears nor is his thought always clear. Despair was my constant companion, sanoi kääntäjä vuonna 1970.
ellauri142.html on line 291: Lakkaamatta on meneillä suuri vexelien lunastuksen toiminta, jonka tietysti pitää olla sisäinen, koska sen päätarkoitus on ize kunkin sisäisen lapsen lunastaminen (keneltä ja millä diskonttokorolla, sitä ei kylläkään kerrota). Jumalallisen valon hajavalosta tulee virtaa ja niin henkinen valo osuu häneen. Ja niin usein kuin tämä tulee apinassa itsetietoisuudeksi, syntyy hänestä lunastaja, hänen oman jumalallisen olemuksensa turilas. Tämän ovat myös monet kristityt ja mystikot tietäneet ja tunteneet; kristinopin opetus henkisestä uudelleensyntymästä ei ole mitään muuta kuin oppi siitä, kuinka jumalan kuteminen jälleen herää humalapäisyydexi apinassa. Niin kuin vertauskuvallisesti on esitetty mm. Uudessa testamentissa, jokainen itse on oman elämänsä Ärjylä; jokaisella on oma sotavaununsa ts. hänen hämäräperäisisllä supervoimilla varustettu luontosuhteensa; siellä on myös hänen henkinen johtajansa (J. Krishna) ottanut asuntonsa ja se antaa maalliselle apinalle neuvojaan. Kun siis apina itsetietoisesti liittyy lunastajaansa, jolla on hänessä sijoitusasuntonsa, ovat kers. Ärjylä ja kapt. Kalpa, Adam ja Eva yhtyneet. ”Lastenvaunut” tulevat silloin meissä asuvan jumalan hengen temppeliksi, sillä Ärjylä on transumies, omaa asiaansa ajatteleva apina ja kapt. Kalpa ex-koiras apinoiden
pl aneetalta, ”uusi puusta pudonnut gorilla", joka asustelee maallisessa apinassa, mutta myös hänen yläpuolellaan ja koputtaa lattiaa jos alakerrasta tuleee älämölöä; ja ainoastaan apinan tullessa alienixi, joka ize asiassa on todellinen ja oikea apina, saattaa maallinen marakatti päästä korkean ihanteensa toteuttamiseen ja vapautua petoxhishta, ahdishtuxhesta sekä shynnistä.
ellauri142.html on line 307: Vuonna 1395 hänet lähetettiin Deventeriin yhteisen elämän varattomien veljien ylläpitämään kouluun. Hänestä tuli taitava kirjojen
pl agioija, ja näin hän pystyi elättämään itsensä. Myöhemmin hän pääsi kipuamaan Zwollen lähellä sijaitsevalle Pyhän Agnesin vuorelle. Hänen veljensä oli ollut siellä pidempään ja ylennyt a prioriksi. Tuomas peri papin viran vuonna 1413 ja alipriorin toimen 1429.
ellauri142.html on line 309: Paavi sai aikaan vähän ristiriitoja yhteisössä. Muuten Tuomaan elämä oli hiljaista, ja aika kului omistautuneena haureuden harjoittamiselle, kirjoittamiselle ja kirjojen
pl agioinnille. Hän
pl agioi raamattua ainakin neljä kertaa. Hän tunsi Raamatun hyvin, ja hänen kirjoituksensa sisälsivät huomattavasti viittauksia erityisesti Uuteen testamenttiin, mutta myös vanhempiin. Tuomas kuului "uuteen hurskauteen", devotio modernaan, 1300-luvulla syntyneeseen trendikkääseen mustikanpoimijaliikkeeseen. Ajattelussaan hän oli yhteisen elämän varattomien veljien ja devotio modernan perustajien Geert Grooten, Stephen Cole Kleenen, Nat King Colen, Stephen Kingin ja Florentius Radewijnsin apinoija.
ellauri142.html on line 325: Eikä vieläkään olla päästy edes Tuomaxen
pl agiaattiin asti. Vedätyxistä edes puhumattakaan! Kemppistä on yllättävän vaikea löytää netistä, ainakaan hollannixi, lähes kaikki paikat myyvät käärmeöljyä. No löytyi 1, kylläkin vaan valokuvina. Nuttige vermaningen, nötiga förmaningar.
ellauri142.html on line 341: "dispenser", gracious lord, patron (ap
pl ied to gods), tai size on jakorasia: the female organs, pudendum muliebre, vulva. Molemmissa merkityxissä siis rakkaus. Gita puolestaan tulee sanasta Gitta Holmström.
ellauri142.html on line 354: syntyy kastisekoitus, eikä sieltä löydy puhtaan ja riettaan eroa. Kalikkakaulat sekoittuvat paimensukuisiin. Turhaan koittaa ruusuristiläiset tässä hääräillä, tää on pelkkää rasismia, pure and sim
pl e. Se on säilytettävä. Siitä Arjunan alakuloisuus.
ellauri142.html on line 401:
Pas pithekos phusei eidenai oregei, eli apinat on luonnostaan uteliaita kuin apinat. (Urkund merkkasi ton punaisella, se on
pl agiaatti Arilta.)
Mutta mitä se hyödyttää, siitä saa vaan sielullensa vahingon , parempi olla tyhmä maalainen ja kyyristellä herran kynnyxellä. Laat af an oonmatige wijsbegeerte. Pane se kirja pois, riittää kun hypistelet omaa napanöyhtää,
gnothi seauton .
ellauri142.html on line 433:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/4b/Thomas_von_Kempen_JS.jpg" />
ellauri142.html on line 544: The ninth chapter of the Bhagavad Gita is Raja Vidya Yoga. In this chapter, Krishna ex
pl ains that He is Supreme and how this material existence is created, maintained and destroyed by His Yo-yo and all beings come and go under his supervision like in North Korea. He reveals the Role and the Importance of Bhakti...
ellauri142.html on line 607:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/96/Herbert_Spencer.jpg" style="float:right;width:20%" />
ellauri142.html on line 609: Spencer's reputation among the Victorians owed a great deal to his agnosticism. He rejected theology as representing the 'impiety of the pious.' He was to gain much notoriety from his repudiation of traditional religion, and was frequently condemned by religious thinkers for allegedly advocating atheism and materialism. Nonetheless, unlike Thomas Henry Huxley, whose agnosticism was a militant creed directed at 'the unpardonable sin of faith' (in Adrian Desmond's phrase), Spencer insisted that he was not concerned to undermine religion in the name of science, but to bring about a reconciliation of the two. The following argument is a summary of Part 1 of his First Princi
pl es (2nd ed 1867).
ellauri142.html on line 628: Alepadevat, muodottomat olennot, ”jumalat”,
pl aneettavaihteistohenget, enkelit, tonkelit
ellauri142.html on line 720: The four classes were the Brahmins (priestly peo
pl e), the Kshatriyas (also called Rajanyas, who were rulers, administrators and warriors), the Vaishyas (artisans, merchants, tradesmen and farmers), and Shudras (labouring classes). The varna categorisation im
pl icitly had a fifth element, being those peo
pl e deemed to be entirely outside its scope, such as tribal peo
pl e and the untouchables. Eli paariat.
ellauri142.html on line 820:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri142.html on line 901:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/25/Aureolus_Theophrastus_Bombastus_von_Hohenheim_%28Paracelsus%29._Wellcome_V0004455.jpg/800px-Aureolus_Theophrastus_Bombastus_von_Hohenheim_%28Paracelsus%29._Wellcome_V0004455.jpg" style="float:right;width:20%" />
ellauri142.html on line 907: Tunteminen, tunnettava ja tunteva ovat kolme toiminnan syytä; välikappale, toiminta ja toimija; nämä kolme yhdessä ovat tekemisen elementit. Mut mit vit, näitähän on yxin tein 6, eikä 5? Ja hei, mitä toimija on ellei ruumis
pl us se jumalallinen osa? Ei tää kyllä nyt oikein pelitä.
ellauri142.html on line 925: DODI, nyt selviää mihin tällä kaikella oikein pyritään: Kastien tehtävien jako pistevieraasti. Suutari pysyköön lestistään, älköönkä yhtään yrittäkö snobbailla. A good wife knows her
pl ace. Parempi on, vaikka heikoillakin voimilla täyttää oman velvollisuutensa kuin toiselle määrätty toimi, olkoon sen toimittaminen kuinka helppoa tahansa. Se joka täyttää sen velvollisuuden, jonka hänen oma luonteensa hänelle määrää, ei tee syntiä. No niimpä tietysti. Vittu et tää on läpinäkyvää!
ellauri142.html on line 997: Ja vielä teosofisen seuran sinetti,
pl us legenda: Symboli on jonkin käsitteen näkyvä vertauskuva. Tällaiset vertauskuvat ovat yhtä vanhoja kuin ihmiskuntakin. Jokaisella tieteellä, kauppahuoneella ym. laitoksella ovat omat logonsa. Näinä aikoina, jolloin kirjaimet ja kirjoitustaito ovat tuiki tuntemattomat, ovat tällaiset vertauskuvat erittäin suuresta arvosta. Nyt käytetään niin paljon ikoneja, että niistä aikaa voittaen kehittyy kokonainen kuvakirjoitus. Kaikki mobiilit
ellauri142.html on line 1012:
plicit.bing.net%2Fth%3Fid%3DOIP.c--HJrlLU_wZU18MlKXdggHaHa%26pid%3DApi&f=1" />
ellauri142.html on line 1020:
Alphonse Louis Constant , (8. helmikuuta 1810 – 31. toukokuuta 1875) oli ranskalainen okkultisti ja maagikko. Nimi ”Eliphas Lévi”, jolla hän kirjoitti kirjansa, oli hänen yrityksensä kääntää etunimensä Alphonse ja Louis hepreankielisiksi. Lévi oli pariisilaisen suutarin poika. Hän kävi pappisseminaareissa ja alkoi opiskella katolisen papin virkaa varten. Samaan aikaan hän kuitenkin rakastui ja lopetti opintonsa ilman pappisvihkimystä. Hän kirjoitti lukuisia lyhyitä uskonnollisia teoksia: Des Moeurs et des Doctrines du Rationalisme en France ('rationalismin moraalisista tavoista ja opeista Ranskassa', 1839) oli vastavalistuksen kulttuurillinen lentolehtinen. La Mère de Dieu ('Jumalan äiti', 1844) johti kahteen lyhyeen vankilatuomioon. Se seurasi kahta radikaalia lentolehtistä L'Evangile du Peu
pl e ('Ihmisten evankeliumi', 1840), ja Le Testament de la Liberté ('Vapauden testamentti'), jotka julkaistiin vallankumouksen vuonna 1848. Lévi oli lyhyen aikaa naimisissa kirjailija Claude Vignonin kanssa. Alphonse oli kalju partapozo.
ellauri142.html on line 1039: Aikuisen voiman lehdessä 11/21 oli uutta tietoa paskan elämän oireyhtymästä. Sen tärkein tekijä on laissez-faire kapitalismin keskeinen credo, toi "maaginen vapaaehtoisuus" (Magical voluntarism). Termin lanseeraaja David Small oli hyvä joskin pieni mies. Taavi-eno kuoli 76-vuotiaana 2014. Vaikka britti olikin, se oli aivan oikeilla jäljillä. Amerikkalaisten ylläpitämä Wikipedia tuomizee (tai vähintäinkin leimaa) sen näkemyxet nimellä "a social materialist ex
pl anation of psychological distress". Tää "maaginen vapaaehtoisuus" on toi seppoilu, eli existentialistinen uskomus että jokaisella yxilöllä on voima luoda izestään mitä haluaa. No sehän on aivan ilmiselvää potaskaa. Sitä hanakammin sitä tarjotaan kaikessa jenkkiviihteessä, kz. esim.
Emily in Paris . Fisherin mukaan "masennus on esimerkki siitä mitä tapahtuu, kun maaginen vapaaehtoisuus tulee mahdollisen rajalle." Sillä rajalla kävi Eskikin, kun sen tieteellinen uskottavuus upposi, mutta aika äkkiä se osas rationalisoida asian ja asemoida izensä uudestaan nyt "käytännön filosofixi", lue motivaatiopuhujaxi. Pastorixihan se oli pienenä aikonutkin. Haaveet toteutuivat! Höpsismi toimii sittenkin!
ellauri142.html on line 1045: Smail wrote several books on the subject of psychotherapy, emphasizing the extent to which society is often responsible for personal distress. Critical of the claims made by psychotherapy, he suggests that it only works to the extent that the therapist becomes a friend of the patient, providing encouragement and support. Much distress, he says, results from current conflicts, not past ones, and in any case, damage done probably cannot be undone, though we may learn to live with it. He doubts whether 'catharsis', the process whereby it is supposed that understanding past events makes them less painful, really works. The assumption that depression, or any other form of mental distress, is caused by something within the person that can be fixed, is he argued, without foundation. He could thus be regarded as part of the 'anti-psychiatry' movement, along with R.D. Laing and Thomas Szasz, but where Laing emphasised family nexus as making psychosis understandable, Smail emphasises 'Interest' and power in relation to more everyday distress. These are integral to Western society, and, he suggests, considered out of bounds by most psychotherapists, who are themselves both constrained and com
pl icit in protecting their own interests.
ellauri142.html on line 1047: Smail also attacks the common conceptions of 'happiness' and 'relationships', pointing out that these are by-products of real life, and should not be ends in themselves. He suggests that taking part in real joint efforts is what seems to make peo
pl e forget themselves and become truly happy, but he also takes a despairing view of how modern society makes it hard to see what the real point of these efforts might be for many peo
pl e.
ellauri143.html on line 32:
Tikku Kuralla play:none">Singlejä
ellauri143.html on line 40:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a2/%E0%AE%A4%E0%AE%BF%E0%AE%B0%E0%AF%81%E0%AE%95%E0%AF%8D%E0%AE%95%E0%AF%81%E0%AE%B1%E0%AE%B3%E0%AF%8D_%E0%AE%A4%E0%AF%86%E0%AE%B3%E0%AE%BF%E0%AE%B5%E0%AF%81.pdf/page1-330px-%E0%AE%A4%E0%AE%BF%E0%AE%B0%E0%AF%81%E0%AE%95%E0%AF%8D%E0%AE%95%E0%AF%81%E0%AE%B1%E0%AE%B3%E0%AF%8D_%E0%AE%A4%E0%AF%86%E0%AE%B3%E0%AE%BF%E0%AE%B5%E0%AF%81.pdf.jpg" height="350px"/>
ellauri143.html on line 45: “Peo
pl e often confuse hedgehog (mull eli in Tamil) with porcupine (mullam pandri),” says the PhD holder, who has done a study on rabbit species, Yarkand Hare, at the Institute of Zoology, Chinese Academy of Sciences.
ellauri143.html on line 57: The Bharatiya Janata Party (pronounced [bʱɑːɾət̪iːjə dʒənət̪ɑː pɑːrtiː] ( listen); English: Indian Peo
pl e's Party; abbr. BJP) is one of two major political parties in India, along with the Indian National Congress. It has been the ruling political party of the Republic of India since 2014. The BJP is a right-wing party, and its policy has historically reflected Hindu nationalist positions. It has close ideological and organisational links to the much older Rashtriya Swayamsevak Sangh (RSS). As of 2020, it is the country's largest political party in terms of representation in the national parliament and state assemblies and is by far the world's largest party in terms of primary membership, with the second largest party, the Communist Party of China, having about half the registered members of the BJP.
ellauri143.html on line 60: In the picture tweeted on Saturday (November 2), Thiruvalluvar, who is revered in Tamil Nadu for authoring Thirukkural, a collection of 1,330 life-advice cou
pl ets, is seen smeared with sacred ash and wearing a rudraksha necklace and upper-arm bracelets. This is an entirely new portrayal of the ancient poet whose pictures has so far shown him attired only in white and without religious symbols.
ellauri143.html on line 61: The picture was also accompanied by a cou
pl et from the first chapter of Thirukkural — “Katradhanaal aaya Payanen kol VaalaRivan natraal Thozhaaar enin,” which translates to — “What profit have those derived from learning, who worship not the good feet of him who is possessed of pure knowledge?”
ellauri143.html on line 63: The state BJP, it is alleged, has given a new inference to the cou
pl et which has a religious overtone. The inference they provided goes like this — “What is the use of education when one who defies god and his believers?”
ellauri143.html on line 69: Varṇāśrama (varna-ashrama "väri-väsymättömyys") refers to the “laws relating to four castes”—Brāhmaṇa, Kṣatriya, Vaiśya and Śūdra and to four stages of (he-man) life—the student, the householder, the anchorite and the religious mendicant are expounded in the code of Manu and are ap
pl icable to
Indian Society alone . Muut älkööt sotkeutuko tähän. Kuulitteko, pysykää poissa! Älä nyt tuu!
ellauri143.html on line 84: The Kura has been widely admired by scholars and influential leaders across the ethical, social, political, economical, religious, philosophical, and spiritual spheres over its history. These include Ilango Adigal (never heard), Kambar (n.h.), Leo Tolstoy, Mahatma Gandhi, Albert Schweitzer (heard ok),
pl us Constantius Joseph Beschi, Karl Graul, George Uglow Pope, Alexander Piatigorsky, and Yu Hsi (all n.h.). The work remains to be translated. Oops correct that, the text has been translated into at least 40 Indian languages including English, making it one of the most translated ancient works. Ever since it came to print for the first time in 1812, the Kura text has never been out of print. Whole trainloads lie "left on read" in Sri Lanka.
ellauri143.html on line 88: According to Miron Winslow (n.h.), kuṟa is used as a literary term to indicate "a metrical line of 2 feet, or a distich or cou
pl et of short lines, the first of 4 and the second of 3 feet." Thus, Tirukkuṟaḷ literally comes to mean "sacred cou
pl ets." Pyhiä ku
pl etteja.
ellauri143.html on line 92: The Kura is structured into 133 chapters, each containing 10 cou
pl ets (or kuras), for a total of 1,330 cou
pl ets. All the cou
pl ets are in kura venba metre, and all the 133 chapters have an ethical theme and are grouped into three parts, or "books":
ellauri143.html on line 112: The book on aṟam (virtue, KILL!) contains 380 verses, that of poruḷ (wealth, EAT!) has 700 and that of inbam or kāmam (love, FUCK!) has 250. Just goes to show. Each kura or cou
pl et contains exactly seven words, known as cirs, with four cirs on the first line and three on the second, following the kura metre. A cir is a single or a combination of more than one Tamil word. For exam
pl e, the term Tirukkuṟaḷ is a cir formed by combining the two words tiru and kuṟa. The Kura text has a total of 9310 cirs made of 14,000 Tamil words.
ellauri143.html on line 114: Of the 1,330 cou
pl ets in the text, 40 cou
pl ets relate to god, rain, calisthenics, and virtue; 340 on fundamental everyday virtues of an individual; 250 on royalty; 100 on ministers of state; 220 on essential requirements of administration; 130 on social morality, both positive and negative; and 250 on human love, fucking and passion. Just goes to show.
ellauri143.html on line 117: Or rather, wealth and
pl easure must be pursued with an "action with renunciation" (Nishkan Karma), that is, one must act ostensibly without craving them in order to resolve neck tension.
ellauri143.html on line 134: Lattapäiden tekopyhille neuvokeille on ominaista että ne puhuvat koko ajan ristiin kuin oravat, eikö teistäkin. Joka lähtöön löytyy siihen kannustava ohje, ja kun se menee perseelleen, löytyy siitä varoittava. Minähän sanoin, enkö sanonutkin? Eikö niin? Eikö niin? Tähän olen poiminut
intialaisen kurahousun 1330 ku
pl etista hyvänlaisen otoxen. Poisjätetyt oli vielä ikävystyttävämpiä.
ellauri143.html on line 144: Peter said to Him, "You shall never wash My feet." Jesus answered Him, "If I do not wash You, You have no part with Me." Simon Peter said to Him, "Lord, not My feet only, but also My hands and My head!" Jesus said to Him, "He who is bathed needs only to wash His feet, but is com
pl etely clean; and You are clean, but not all of You. Guess what part of You is coming next!"
ellauri143.html on line 146:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri143.html on line 148: Luku 1. Jumalan tylytys (கடவுள் வாழ்த்து kaṭavuḷ vāḻttu): ku
pl etit 1–10
ellauri143.html on line 150: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 155: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 159: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 163: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 172: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 189:
Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 193: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 195: Howe'er with s
pl endour lived, all worthless is her life.
ellauri143.html on line 197: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 201: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 208:
Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 221: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 232: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 236: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 240: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 250: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 254: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 258: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 262: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 266: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 270: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 274: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 283: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 287: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 298: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 299: Nor wealth nor virtue does that man desire 'tis
pl ain,
ellauri143.html on line 302: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 306: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 310: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 312: Or loss to blameless men, the 'why' will thoughtful hearts em
pl oy.
ellauri143.html on line 314: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 321: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 325: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 334: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 338: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 342: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 346: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 355: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 359: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 363: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 372: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 373: Make not thy poverty a
pl ea for ill;
ellauri143.html on line 376: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 386: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 390: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 392: Is as when water fills the lake that village needs sup
pl ies.
ellauri143.html on line 394: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 404: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 405: The sup
pl iants' cry for aid yields scant delight,
ellauri143.html on line 414: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 418: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 422: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 431: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 435: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 439: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 443: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 450: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 452: If you
pl ay what all the world condemns as wrong.
ellauri143.html on line 465: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 469: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 478: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 479: Falsehood may take the
pl ace of truthful word,
ellauri143.html on line 482: Ku
pl etti :
ellauri143.html on line 491: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 495: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 498: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 509: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 513: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 514: To punish wrong, with kindly benefits the doers
pl y;
ellauri143.html on line 517: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 520: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 529: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 533: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 537: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 546: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 550: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 554: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 558: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 565: Vaan se on hyvä kö ajattelee et tää onkin kaikki paskaa, sitten ei niin harmita kun se vääjäämättä loppuu. Arvon kieltäminen voi olla sekin mukavaa. No ainakaa nää ei peukuta jenkkien "Me first" adagea. Ex
pl anation : Desire the desire of Him who is without desire; in order to renounce desire, desire that desire. LOL. Pessimistin elämänviisaus. Syö Englischer Gartenissa, ota Atma-koira.
ellauri143.html on line 567: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 571: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 572: Renunciation made- even here true
pl easures men acquire;
ellauri143.html on line 573: Renounce while time is yet, if to such
pl easures you aspire.
ellauri143.html on line 575: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 582: Eipä tässä muuta kun valmistaudutaan loppupeleihin. Tai mitäs niihin kannattaa paljon valmistautua. Loppuu viimeinkin tää EAT! FUCK! KILL! kolmisointu. Toi mystiikka-arvaus menee kyllä väärinpäin: oikeasti valot sammuu, haju jää. Viimeinen ku
pl eteista on oikeammilla jäljillä.
ellauri143.html on line 584: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 585: When lust and wrath and error's tri
pl e tyranny is o'er,
ellauri143.html on line 588: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 592: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 601: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 605: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 614: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 616: When evils come, why then should they com
pl ain.
ellauri143.html on line 618: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 631: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 635: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 636: An army, peo
pl e, wealth, a minister, friends, fort: six things-
ellauri143.html on line 639: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 640: A slee
pl ess promptitude, knowledge, decision strong:
ellauri143.html on line 643: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 647: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 649: That king as god o'er subject peo
pl e reigns.
ellauri143.html on line 651: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 652: With
pl easant speech, who gives and guards with powerful liberal hand,
ellauri143.html on line 655: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 656: Gifts, grace, right sceptre, care of peo
pl e's veal;
ellauri143.html on line 663: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 667: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 671: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 675: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 677: Blockheads´ faces pairs of sores dis
pl ay.
ellauri143.html on line 679: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 680: You meet with joy, with
pl easant thought you part;
ellauri143.html on line 683: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 685: Yet learned men are first; th´unlearned stand in lowest
pl ace.
ellauri143.html on line 687: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 691: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 695: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 699: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 703: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 707: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 711: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 715: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 716: Like those at draughts would
pl ay without the chequered square,
ellauri143.html on line 717: Men void of am
pl e lore would counsels of the learned share.
ellauri143.html on line 719: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 723: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 734: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 738: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 742: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 746: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 750: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 761: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 765: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 769: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 781: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 785: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 789: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 797: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 801: Ex
pl anation: True greatness fears the society of the base; it is only the low - minded who will regard them as friends.
ellauri143.html on line 808: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 812: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 816: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 820: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 829: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 833: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 840: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 849: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 851: ´Tis hard a peo
pl e´s homesteads to attack.
ellauri143.html on line 856: Kinkun apurit. Ex
pl anation : Let (a minister) be chosen, after he has been tried by means of these four things, viz,-his virtue, (love of) money, (love of) sexual
pl easure, and tear of (losing) life. And keep his relatives as hostages. Just tätä tematiikkaa oli valtaistuinpeleissä. Ei se ole vierasta kv. yrityxillekään. Steve Jobs varmaan luki näitä värssyjä.
The Thirukkural way of Leadership . Mr. T. Kannan.
ellauri143.html on line 859: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 863: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 875: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 879: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 883: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 887: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 901: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 903: His am
pl e joy, swift fading, soon shall die
ellauri143.html on line 905: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 906: As ´Give´ the robber cries with lance u
pl ift,
ellauri143.html on line 907: So kings with sceptred hand im
pl ore a gift
ellauri143.html on line 909: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 922: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 926: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 930: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 939: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 943: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 947: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 951: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 953: A spy, whate´er men do, must watchful mind dis
pl ay.
ellauri143.html on line 955: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 959: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 963: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 967: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 994: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 995: Who pain as
pl easure takes, he shall acquire
ellauri143.html on line 1013: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1017: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1021: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1023: Things not dis
pl easing, needful things, declare.
ellauri143.html on line 1025: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1026: Speak
pl easant things, but never utter idle word;
ellauri143.html on line 1027: Not though by monarch´s ears with
pl easure heard.
ellauri143.html on line 1036: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1040: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1044: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1049: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1053: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1062: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1075: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1079: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1083: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1087: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1091: Ex
pl anation : Accumulate wealth; it will destroy the arrogance of (your) foes; there is no weapon sharper than it. Jenkit tietävät. Niinkuin tiesivät kaikki aikaisemmatkin hegemoniat. Ryöväämistä ansaintakeinona ei lyö ainakaan rehellinen työ.
ellauri143.html on line 1093: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1097: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1099: Of virtuous men, and those of am
pl e wealth, call that a ´land´.
ellauri143.html on line 1103: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1104: Who
pl enteous store of glorious wealth have gained,
ellauri143.html on line 1107: Ex
pl anation : To those who have acquired an abundance of riches, the other two, (virtue and
pl easure) are a piece of cake.
ellauri143.html on line 1110: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1127: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1131: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1135: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1139: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1150: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1154: Ex
pl anation : Gradually abandon without revealing (beforehand) the friendship of those who pretend inability to carry out what they (really) could do.
ellauri143.html on line 1156: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1160: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1164: Ex
pl anation : Make friendship (with one) after ascertaining (his) character, birth defects, and the whole of his relations.
ellauri143.html on line 1166: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1184: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1190: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1209: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1210: To those who know them not, com
pl ain not of your woes;
ellauri143.html on line 1213: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1217: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1221: Ex
pl anation : (A)
pl easing (object) to his foes is he who reads not moral works, does nothing that is enjoined by them cares not for reproach and is not possessed of good qualities.
ellauri143.html on line 1223: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1232: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1240: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1244: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1253: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1257: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1261: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1265: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1269: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1273: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1277: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1281: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1285: Ku
pl etti:
nn
ellauri143.html on line 1286: No virtuous deed, no seemly wealth, no
pl easure, rests
ellauri143.html on line 1301: Aatelisen tunnistaa paizi hörökorvista niin ritarillisuudesta. Eliskä ezen pyllyn alla on hyvä hevonen. The goodly knight pricks his horse on the
pl ain. The rain in Spain falls mainly on the
pl ain. How kind of you to let me come.
ellauri143.html on line 1303: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1307: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1308: The smile, the gift, the
pl easant word, unfailing courtesy
ellauri143.html on line 1313: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1316: Ex
pl anation: If (food and work are either) excessive or deficient, the three things enumerated by (medical) writers: flatulence, biliousness, and phlegm, will cause disease.
ellauri143.html on line 1318: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1330: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1332: Will live in worship and ap
pl ause of all the world for aye.
ellauri143.html on line 1341: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1342: Their am
pl e wealth is misery to men of churlish heart,
ellauri143.html on line 1345: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1349: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1364: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1379: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1380: Who
pl oughing eat their food, they truly live:
ellauri143.html on line 1383: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1387: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1391: Ex
pl anation : If the owner does not (personally) attend to his cultivation, his land will behave like an angry wife and yield him no
pl easure.
ellauri143.html on line 1393: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1395: Men seated idle
pl eading poverty.
ellauri143.html on line 1396: Ex
pl anation : A man's true manliness consists in making himself the head and benefactor of his family. (Mitä vittua?)
ellauri143.html on line 1403: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1405: 'The
pl ague of penury by asking alms we'll drive away.'
ellauri143.html on line 1407: Ex
pl anation : There is no greater folly than the boldness with which one seeks to remedy the evils of poverty by begging (rather than by working).
ellauri143.html on line 1411: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1415: Ex
pl anation : Even thin gruel is ambrosia to him who has obtained it by labour.
ellauri143.html on line 1417: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1421: Ex
pl anation : Beggars rejoice exceedingly when they behold those who bestow (their alms) with kindness and courtesy.
ellauri143.html on line 1423: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1425: The
pl ague of poverty itself is am
pl e proof.
ellauri143.html on line 1427: Ex
pl anation : He who begs ought not to be angry (at a refusal); for even the misery of (his own) poverty should be a sufficient reason (for so doing)
ellauri143.html on line 1429: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1435: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1439: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1443: Ex
pl anation : The destitute poor, who do not renounce their bodies, only consume their neighbour's salt and water.
ellauri143.html on line 1455: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1470: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1474: Ex
pl anation : A single stolen glance of her eyes is more than half the
pl easure of sexual embrace. Provided the other half follows suit anon. Oliskohan Elixirin aaria 'Una furtiva lacrima' tullut hakulistauxessa alempana? En jaxanut selata.
ellauri143.html on line 1480: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1482: In this res
pl endent armlets-bearing damsel live.
ellauri143.html on line 1483: Ex
pl anation:
ellauri143.html on line 1486: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1489: Ex
pl anation: The embraces of a gold-com
pl exioned beautiful female are as
pl easant as to dwell in one's own house and live by one's own (earnings) after distributing (a portion of) it in charity.
ellauri143.html on line 1491: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1494: Ex
pl anation : As one's ignorance is discovered the more one learns, so does repeated intercourse with a welladorned female only create a desire for more.
ellauri143.html on line 1507: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1510: Ex
pl anation : This malady (of lust) is manured by the talk of women and watered by the (harsh) words of my mother.
ellauri143.html on line 1512: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1515: Ex
pl anation : To those who after enjoyment of sexual
pl easure suffer for want of more, there is no help so efficient as the palmyra horse.
ellauri143.html on line 1517: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1520: Ex
pl anation : Having got rid of shame, the suffering body and soul save themselves on the palmyra horse.
ellauri143.html on line 1522: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1525: Ex
pl anation : Modesty and manliness were once my own; now, my own is the palmyra horse that is ridden by the lustful.
ellauri143.html on line 1527: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1530: Ex
pl anation : She with the small garland-like bracelets has given me the palmyra horse and the sorrow that is endured at night.
ellauri143.html on line 1532: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1534: My eyes know no repose for that same sim
pl e maid.
ellauri143.html on line 1536: Ex
pl anation : Mine eyes will not close in sleep on your mistress's account; even at midnight will I think of mounting
her the palmyra horse.
ellauri143.html on line 1538: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1542: Ex
pl anation : There is nothing so noble as the womanly nature that would not ride the palmyra horse, though
pl unged a sea of lust. That is, she is quite happy just riding me.
ellauri143.html on line 1565: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1569: Ex
pl anation:
ellauri143.html on line 1577: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1583: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1606: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1607: A 'feigned aversion' coy to
pl easure gives a zest;
ellauri143.html on line 1608: The
pl easure´s crowned when breast is clasped to fist.
ellauri143.html on line 1610: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1612: That I may still
pl ough on, O night, prolong thy reign!
ellauri143.html on line 1614: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1618: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1622: Ex
pl anation : Unusually great is the female sim
pl icity of your maid whose beauty fills my eyes and whose shoulders resemble the bamboo.
ellauri143.html on line 1624: Ku
pl etti:
ellauri143.html on line 1628: Ex
pl anation : To express their love-sickness by their eyes and resort to begging bespeaks more than ordinary female excellence.
ellauri144.html on line 32:
Kuvia varten Carlson Lauri play:none">Nugaata
ellauri144.html on line 43:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/ff/Henrik_Gabriel_Porthan.jpg/375px-Henrik_Gabriel_Porthan.jpg" />
ellauri144.html on line 60: Nimirum sapere est abiectis utile nugis, et tempestivum pueris concedere ludum, ac non verba sequi fidibus modulanda Latinis, sed verae numerosque modosque ediscere vitae. Quocirca mecum loquor haec tacitusque recordor: Si tibi nulla sitim finiret copia lymphae, narrares medicis: quod, quanto
pl ura parasti, tanto
pl ura cupis, nulline faterier audes? si volnus tibi monstrata radice ...
ellauri144.html on line 97: For Aristotle, youth and age represent extremes of excess and deficiency: the young (neoi) are subject to strong but quick-changing desires; they are hot-tempered, competitive, careless about money, sim
pl e, trusting, hopeful, lofty-minded; they have courage and a sense of shame; they enjoy friends and laughter; they live by honor, not advantage; they tend to hybris; in short, their failings are those of vehemence and excess. Whereas older men (presbyteroi) past their prime have the diametrically opposite failings, of deficiency: their experience of life makes them uncertain, suspicious, small-minded, ungenerous, worried about money, fearful, cold-tempered, grasping after life, and selfish; they live by the code of advantage; they are shameless and pessimistic; they live mostly in memory, talk about the past, com
pl ain a lot; they are slaves to gain; in short, both their desires and their ability to gratify them are weak.
ellauri144.html on line 123: Mutta onko Clarxon homo? Ainaskin se on aivan vitun homofoobi, joka on vahva vihje kaappihomosta. (Ei koske minua, I refuse to be bummed.) The Amazon Prime show sees presenters Jeremy Clarkson, Richard Hammond and James May travel the world reviewing cars. The Ofcom com
pl aint comes after Young took issue with a comment in one of the episodes in which the trio made jokes about the Wrangler Jeep being a ‘gay man’s car’..... and then Hammond and May’s ‘quips’ to Clarkson wearing chaps, a pink shirt, he should get some moisturiser. It’s fucking pathetic and actually homophobic. Jeremy Clarkson: I’m not homophobic, I enjoy watching lesbians on the internet.
ellauri144.html on line 135:
Portnoy's Compl aint n. (after Alexander Portnoy 1933- ) A disorder in which a fictional character the same age as the writer kvetches on sex, guilt, sex and Jewishness for 250 pages without pausing for breath.
ellauri144.html on line 136: Portnoy's Com
pl aint asserts that to be sexual is to be fully alive – while to have that denied is a form of living death.
ellauri144.html on line 199:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri144.html on line 209:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri144.html on line 210:
Phillu mainizee (175) Mandelin tykänneen Tito Puentesista ja Pupi Camposta niin paljon että muutti nimensä Babaluuxi. (Kolmas nimi on pianisti Joe Loco.) "Babalú" is a Cuban popular afro song written by Margarita Lecuona, the cousin of composers Ernestina and Ernesto Lecuona. The song title is a reference to the Santería deity Babalú Ayé. "Babalú" was the signature song of the fictional television character Ricky Ricardo, pl ayed by Desi Arnaz in the television comedy series I Love Lucy, though it was already an established musical number for Arnaz in the 1940s as evidenced in the 1946 film short Desi Arnaz and His Orchestra. By the time Arnaz had adopted the song, it had become a Latin American music standard, associated mainly with Cuban singer Miguelito Valdés, who recorded one of its many versions with Xavier Cugat and his Waldorf-Astoria Orchestra. Arnaz made the song a rather popular cultural reference in the United States.
ellauri144.html on line 212: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri144.html on line 213: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri144.html on line 292: The United States has long maintained a military base at Guantanamo in Cuba. This makes the U.S. adaptation of the song a multi-layer statement, to put it mildly. It's typically sung by freedom activists who would perhaps like to see that illegally torturing prison and military base close for good, though they don't usually empl oy the song to that end.
ellauri144.html on line 296: When empl oyed in the United States, the verses sung tend to remain concise - sticking to the verse about being an honest man :D. The line "My verses flow green and red" references the reds and blood on the land, i.e. is an allusion to revolution, though it's almost never used to incite antifa violence in the US. The final verse speaks about casting one's lot with the poor, which is a singularly bad and un-American idea.
ellauri144.html on line 298: The chorus, "Guantanamera, guajira Guantanamera" simpl y refers to singing a song about Guantanamo. (Guantanamera means a woman prisoner in Guantanamo. Not that they are many of them alive.)
ellauri144.html on line 303: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri144.html on line 304:
ellauri144.html on line 316: Avrom Hirsch Goldbogen (aka Michael Todd) (born June 22, 1909 – March 22, 1958) was a JEWISH American theater and film producer, best known for his 1956 production of Around the World in 80 Days, which won an Academy Award for Best Picture. He is known as the third of Elizabeth Taylor's seven husbands, and is the only one whom she did not divorce (because he died in a private pl ane accident a year after their marriage).
ellauri144.html on line 325: On March 22, 1958, Todd's private pl ane the Liz crashed near Grants, New Mexico. "Ah, c'mon," he said. "It's a good, safe pl ane. I wouldn't let it crash. I'm taking along a picture of Elizabeth, and I wouldn't let anything happen to her."
ellauri144.html on line 327: In June 1977, Avrom's remains were desecrated by graverobbers. The thieves broke into his casket looking for a $100,000 diamond ring, which, according to rumor, Taylor had pl aced on her husband's finger prior to his burial. The bag containing Avrom's remains was found under a tree near his burial pl ot. The bag and casket had been sealed in Albuquerque after Avrom's remains were identified following the 1958 crash. Avrom''s remains were once more identified through dental records and were reburied in a secret location.
ellauri144.html on line 421: Dylan Marlais Thomas (27 October 1914 – 9 November 1953 = 39v) was a Welsh poet and writer whose works include the poems "Do not go gentle into that good night" (Josta suomenruozalainen leijakirjailija otti "Älä mene yxin yöllä ulos") and "And death shall have no dominion"; the "pl ay for voices" Under Milk Wood; and stories and radio broadcasts such as A Child´s Christmas in Wales and Portrait of the Artist as a Young Dog. He became widely popular in his lifetime and remained so after his death at the age of 39 in New York City. By then he had acquired a reputation, which he had encouraged, as a "roistering, drunken and doomed poet".
ellauri144.html on line 453: Spl it all ends up they shan´t crack; Halki poikki ja pinoon, eivät säry;
ellauri144.html on line 467: ploads/2021/10/Ware-5.-Bailey-book-e1635428752173.jpeg" />
ellauri144.html on line 520: HBL on oikeastaan aivan liian patakonservatiivinen mun makuuni. Samassa numerossa jossa Renén paranoidi kauppakillan esitelmä julkaistiin, väänsi joku hoblan urheilutoimittaja erittäinkin suuren tortun siitä kuinka miehet on anuxesta ja naiset perseestä, ja kuinka naisten syrjimisen oikaisemisexi ei sunkaan pidä mennä näpelöimään tupl astandardoituja normeja. Kyllä ne vanhat toimivat paremmin kuin kivespussillinen uusia, nehän on kaikki Darwinilta peräisin. Älkää menkö ollenkaan nyt sähläämään. Miehet kazoo jääkiekkoa ja naiset laittaa irtoripsiä, se on vaan luonnollista. Naturalia non sunt turpia.
ellauri144.html on line 564: "Tahdon aina irti siitä mikä on vapauttanut mut, pl us siistit kotiolot." "Is it me? IT IS me, Me ME ME ME! But IS IT?" This statement reflects Roth´s patent narcissism and determination to promote himself at any cost. Fellow juutikkaiden mielestä (esim rabbi Rackmann) Roth oli antisemiitti kun sen fiktiivinen kessu ei antanut jutkukaverille erikoiskohtelua. Phillu räkytti tästä Rackmannille vielä puoli vuosisataa myöhemmin. Kosto elää, vaikka jutku kuolisi. In 1959, Roth and Maggie (happily married) went to Italy for 6 mo on a Guggenheim. Phillu olis tahtonut koittaa shtuppimista 3 pekkaan kolmantena joku Marketta, mutta Maggipa ei suostunut.
ellauri144.html on line 568: Maggin pojalle (josta tulee rekkakuski) se antaa lukemisexi kirjan The Red Badge of Courage. It is a war novel by American author Stephen Crane (1871–1900). Taking pl ace during the American Civil War, the story is about a young private of the Union Army, Henry Fleming, who flees from the field of battle. Overcome with shame, he longs for a wound, a "red badge of courage," to counteract his cowardice. When his regiment once again faces the enemy, Henry acts as standard-bearer, who carries a flag.
ellauri144.html on line 575: A prolific and versatile writer, Bierce was regarded as one of the most influential journalists in the United States, and as a pioneering writer of realist fiction. For his horror writing, Michael Dirda ranked him alongside Edgar Allan Poe and H. P. Lovecraft. S. T. Joshi speculates that he may well be the greatest satirist America has ever produced, and in this regard can take his pl ace with such figures as Juvenal, Swift, and Voltaire. His war stories influenced Stephen Crane, Ernest Hemingway, and others, and he was considered an influential and feared literary critic. In recent decades Bierce has gained wider respect as a fabulist and for his poetry.
ellauri144.html on line 577: Both of Bierce´s sons died before he did. Day committed suicide after a romantic rejection (he non-fatally shot the woman of his affections along with her fiancé beforehand), and Leigh died of pneumonia related to alcoholism. Bierce separated from his wife in 1888, after discovering compromising letters to her from an admirer. They divorced in 1904. Mollie Day Bierce died the following year. Bierce was an avowed agnostic, and strongly rejected the divinity of Christ. He suffered from lifelong asthma, as well as compl ications from his war wounds, most notably episodes of fainting and irritability assignable to the traumatic brain injury suffered at Kennesaw Mountain. In 1913, Bierce told reporters that he was travelling to Mexico to gain first-hand experience of the Mexican Revolution. He disappeared and was never seen again.
ellauri144.html on line 579: Kylläpä oli erinomaisia kavereita. Jos jenkit kehuvat jotakuta kupl ixi voi olla lähes 110% varma että se on hanurista. Mutta tätä Biercea ize asiassa haukuskellaan aika lailla, ja niinpä se sitten onkin jonkinlainen anarkisti. Sen runoista esim Dies Irae ja Dekalogi on silkkaa rienausta. Bitter Bierce. Sen isän nimi oli Marcus Aurelius. Epigrammeja, enimmäxeen aika tylsiä kun ei enää tiedä kenestä on puhe.
ellauri144.html on line 613: Religion. A daughter of Hope and Fear, expl aining to Ignorance the nature of the Unknowable.
ellauri144.html on line 636: alors une carrière rempl ie de découvertes et d´honneurs. mais lui vaut aussi de
ellauri144.html on line 640: mariage pâtit du décès de pl usieurs enfants en bas âge : parmi les quatre enfants
ellauri144.html on line 644: père. Le 22 août 1870, le coupl e Bernard se sépare officiellement. En 1869, il
ellauri144.html on line 655: lettres francais. Il parle de ses humeurs, de ses découvertes, se pl aint de sa
ellauri144.html on line 671: src="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/75/Raffalovich%2C_Marc_Andr%C3%A9_%281864-1934%29.jpg"
ellauri144.html on line 687: psychological genesis remains largely unexpl ained. Basing itself on sacred
ellauri144.html on line 692: proceed from a genuine affective and sexual compl ementarity. Under no
ellauri144.html on line 713: Metaverses, in some limited form, have already been impl emented in video games such as Second Life. Some iterations of the metaverse involve integration between virtual and physical spaces and virtual economies.
ellauri144.html on line 725: "In a pristine region where nature and animals have thrived for centuries, wildlife biologist Lana Fedorova is devoting her life to protecting species that have been hunted nearly to extinction, including a rare white deer. Ominously, in a nuclear pl ant nearby, the arrival of a new director, the ruthless and power-hungry Allura, rattles the staff and sets the stage for internecine strife between the zealous bureaucrat Borys Slykovitch and ambitious engineer Maksym (Max) Smirnov.
ellauri144.html on line 727: When Allura learns that Max, who was her rival for the directorship, is to marry Lana, Allura’s little sister, she swears revenge. Max’s confidence is shaken, and on his next all-night shift at the station, an accident causes the meltdown of one of the reactors. In the ensuing catastrophe, the region and its peopl e are poisoned, and the survivors are forced to evacuate their beloved town.
ellauri144.html on line 866: Platero kaj mi (Platero y yo) estas proza lirika verko de 1914 de la hispana poeto Juan Ramón Jiménez, kiu rekreas poezie la vivon de la azeno Platero, kvankam certe la verkisto havis diversajn azenetojn. La libro estas konstituita de mallongaj bild-epizodoj kiuj inter si ne trudas teman aŭ intrigan ordon kaj prezentas nur impresojn, sensaciojn kaj rememorojn de Moguer (Sudokcidenta Andaluzio) el infana kaj juna epokoj de Juan Ramón Jiménez mem. La verko aspektas taglibro en kiu oni detaligas la pl ej gravajn aspektojn de la realo, de la pensaro kaj de la sentoj de la verkisto. Tamen, ĝi estas nek taglibro nek membiografio, sed nur elekto de historioj el reala medio kaj inter multaj memoroj de la pasinteco.
ellauri144.html on line 868: Platero kaj mi estas la pl ej populara verko de la poeto, estis ofte eldonita (ekzempl e kiel porinfana literaturo kvankam la verko mem ne estas tio), tradukita al multaj lingvoj kaj konvertita en ĉefa kultura elemento de la devenloko Moguer, kie estas muzea domo Casa Museo Zenobia y Juan Ramón Jiménez kiu ekspozicias multajn tradukojn, inter kiuj la esperantlingvan.
ellauri144.html on line 872: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri144.html on line 881: No eres mi redentor, ni eres mi ejempl o, Et ole lunastaja etkä esimerkki,
ellauri145.html on line 32: Anthologie de l´humour ligneux play:none">Puisevaa
ellauri145.html on line 38: L´« humour noir », expression dont le sens moderne a été construit par Breton, est un des ressorts essentiels du surréalisme. L´humour, loin d´être un exercice brillant, engage des zones profondes de l´être et dans les formes les pl us authentiques et les pl us neuves qu´il connaît alors, il se profile sur un arrière-fond de désespoir.
ellauri145.html on line 49: Fatty doit avoir recours à la ruse pour parvenir à ses fins. Ayant saboté le pl at de cette dernière, il fait chasser la cuisinière et Lucrecia Borgia (Fatty travesti) est engagée pour la rempl acer et lui permet d´investir la pl ace. Mais les choses ne traînent pas et la cérémonie de mariage commence.
ellauri145.html on line 60: L´humeur sombre de Breton s´exprime pl einement dans ce que Mark Polizzotti appelle le « passage le pl us sinistre du manifeste » et qui est selon lui le reflet d´une grande « amertume personnelle », une phrase souvent citée et reprochée à Breton, notamment par Albert Camus : « L´acte surréaliste le pl us simpl e consiste, révolvers aux poings, à descendre dans la rue et à tirer au hasard, tant qu´on peut, dans la foule.» Täähän trendaa nykyäänkin, kun sillä pääsee 6 sekunnixi klikkimeediaan. Polizzotto Salvo Montalbano miehineen puuttuu asiaan.
ellauri145.html on line 72: Même s’il ne désespère pas de pouvoir orienter l’action culturelle du Parti et récupérer les forces psychiques dispersées, en conciliant le freudisme avec le marxisme au service du prolétariat, Breton ne cesse de se heurter à l’incompréhension et la défiance croissante venant de la direction du Parti communiste. Il a une rupture definitive avec le pl us rouge Louis Aragon.
ellauri145.html on line 81: Apres un autre manifeste contre le Stalinisme avec Camus, Gide, Hemingway et Huxley, il cosigne dans Le Libertaire une « Déclaration préalable » au manifeste « Surréalisme et anarchisme » : « La lutte pour le rempl acement des structures sociales et l’activité dépl oyée par le surréalisme pour transformer les structures mentales, loin de s’exclure, sont compl émentaires. Leur jonction doit hâter la venue d’un âge libéré de toute hiérarchie et toute contrainte. »
ellauri145.html on line 83: Son pl us grand désir eût été d’appartenir à la famille des grands indésirables.
ellauri145.html on line 85: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ac/Posada2.Catrina.jpeg/300px-Posada2.Catrina.jpeg" />
ellauri145.html on line 86: Anteron peukuttama Pousada on puiseva, saku surrealistimaalari Max Ernst on ällöttävä, kuin myös jättimäinen narsisti Charlie Chapl in.
ellauri145.html on line 104: Juhani Ihanus , FT (s. 8. toukokuuta 1954 Helsinki) on kulttuuripsykologian dosentti Helsingin yliopistossa, taidekasvatuksen ja taidepsykologian dosentti Aalto-yliopistossa sekä aate- ja oppihistorian dosentti Oulun yliopistossa. Hän on toiminut Helsingin yliopistossa vuodesta 1982 lähtien useissa opettaja- ja tutkijatehtävissä. Nähtävästi elinkautinen keskinkertaisuus kuten Lichtenberg. Ihanus on eurooppalaisen kirjallisuusterapian pioneereja. „Unsere Erde ist vielleicht ein Weibchen.“ „Wir fressen einander nicht, wir schlachten uns bloß.“ „Der Amerikaner, der den Kolumbus zuerst entdeckte, machte eine böse Entdeckung.“ Ihan näppäriä, muttei näillä kuuhun mennä. Silti Goethe kehui Joria taikasauvaxi, Kant alleviivas punasella sen kaikki töräyxet, ja Koala-vaari piti sitä izenäisenä ajattelijana. Tolstoinkin mielestä Lichtenberg oli parempi töräyttelijä kuin koketti följetongisti Nietzsche. Georg oli pedofiili, alkoi shtuppia 12-vuotiasta tyttöä v. 1777. Ikävä kyllä Lolita kuoli (varmaan johkin sexitautiin) 5 vuotta myöhemmin. Jostain syystä Jori digas Jacob Böhmeä. Ällöttävä Max Ernst piti Joria verrattomana huromistina. Seuraavasta penseestä mä voisin ottaa opixeni: Le degré le pl us haut jusqu´où puisse s´élever un esprit mediocre, mais pourvu d´expérience, c´est le talent de decouvrir les faiblesses des hommes qui valent mieux que lui. Tässä ei ollut mitään hahatettavaa, vaikka tikulla olis kaivanut.
ellauri145.html on line 110: As a traveling salesman and correspondence clerk, his research and thought was time-limited: he compl ained of "serving the knavery of merchants" and the stupefaction of "deceitful and degrading duties." Fourier produced most of his writings between 1816 and 1821. In 1822, he tried to sell his books again but with no success. Jobs peopl e might not enjoy doing would receive higher pay. Fourier considered trade, which he associated with Jews, to be the "source of all evil" and advocated that Jews be forced to perform farm work in the phalansteries or else sent back to The Philistines with Rotschild money. Fourier´s contempt for the respectable thinkers and ideologies of his age was so intense that he always used the terms philosopher and civilization in a pejorative sense.
ellauri145.html on line 111: The transformation of labor into pl easure is the craziest idea in Fourier´s giant socialist utopia," said Marcuse. He had a concern for the sexually rejected; jilted suitors would be led away by a corps of "fairies" who would soon cure them of their lovesickness, and visitors could consult the card-index of personality types for suitable partners for casual sex. He also defended homosexuality as a personal preference for some peopl e. Fourier sexualizes work itself—the life of the Phalanstery is a continual orgy of intense feeling, intellection, & activity, a society of lovers & wild enthusiasts.
ellauri145.html on line 112: Fourier was also a supporter of women´s rights in a time period when misogynic influences like Jean-Jacques Rousseau were prevalent. Fourier is credited with having originated the word feminism in 1837. Fourier believed that all important jobs should be open to women on the basis of skill and aptitude rather than closed on account of gender. He spoke of women as individuals, not as half the human coupl e. Fourier saw that "traditional" marriage could potentially hurt woman´s rights as human beings and thus never married. Writing before the advent of the term ´homosexuality´, Fourier held that both men and women have a wide range of sexual needs and preferences which may change throughout their lives, including same-sex sexuality and androgénité. He argued that all sexual expressions should be enjoyed as long as peopl e are not abused, and that "affirming one´s difference" can actually enhance social integration. Stark raving mad, he was!
ellauri145.html on line 115: Ei vittu tää piha-Antero on täys hourupää, ja niin on noi sen kaverit, subrealistit symbolistit sun muut mustikkasuut, ja ennenkaikkea ne on totaalisen huumorittomia. 100% tyhjiökuivattuja. Bretonin valizemat Fourierin muka-huvittavat pl äjäyxet on erittäinkin puujalkamaisia.
ellauri145.html on line 157: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/81/P%C3%A9trus_Borel%2C_C%C3%A9lestin_Nanteuil.PNG" width="100%" />
ellauri145.html on line 170: À Mostaganem, il se révèle excellent administrateur mais, victime des idées romantiques qui ne l´ont jamais quitté, il empl oie aussi bien les deniers publics que les siens pour sauver ses administrés de la faim et des fièvres. Le prefet critique ses rapports — la pl us grande partie était faite en vers.
ellauri145.html on line 173: Baudelaire: j´ai toujours eu quelque sympathie pour ce malheureux écrivain dont le génie manqué, pl ein d´ambition et de maladresse, n´a su produire que des ébauches minutieuses, des éclairs orageux, des figures dont quelque chose de trop bizarre… altère la native grandeur.»
ellauri145.html on line 181: - Zauner la glauje, »- répl iqua-t-il en essayant une grimace avec sa hideuse petite bouche. Là-dessus, je fis un effort pour me lever, dans
ellauri145.html on line 184: « Phus phoyez, - dit-il, gue le mié hait de phus dénir dranguile; et maintenant phus zaurez gui che zuis. Recartez-moâ ! che zuis l´Ange ti Pizarre. - Assez bizarre, en effet, - me hasardai-je à répl iquer; mais je m´étais toujours figuré qu´un ange devait avoir des ailes.
ellauri145.html on line 190: "Ring de pell ;" he repl ied, attempting a grin with his little villainous mouth.
ellauri145.html on line 196: "And odd enough, too," I ventured to repl y; "but I was always under the impression that an angel had wings."
ellauri145.html on line 214: Un an pl us tard, sa mère se remarie avec le chef de bataillon Jacques Aupick. C´est à l´adolescence que le futur poète s´opposera à ce beau-père interposé entre sa mère et lui. « Lorsqu´il arrive à Lyon, Charles a dix ans et demi… À l´égard de son beau-père aucune hostilité n´est alors perceptible. ».
ellauri145.html on line 215: Peu fait pour comprendre la vive sensibilité de l´enfant, l´officier Aupick – devenu pl us tard ambassadeur – incarne à ses yeux les entraves à tout ce qu´il aime : sa mère, la poésie, le rêve et, pl us généralement, la vie sans contingences.
ellauri145.html on line 221: Renvoyé du lycée Louis-le-Grand en avril 1839 pour ce qui a passé pour une vétille, mais que son condiscipl e au lycée, Charles Cousin (1822-1894) a expl iqué comme un épisode d´amitié particulière, Baudelaire mène une vie en opposition aux valeurs bourgeoises incarnées par sa famille. Il passe son baccalauréat au lycée Saint-Louis en fin d´année et est reçu in extremis. Jugeant la vie de l´adolescent « scandaleuse » et désirant l´assagir, son beau-père le fait embarquer pour Calcutta. Le Paquebot des Mers du Sud quitte Bordeaux le 9 ou 10 juin 1841. Mais en septembre, un naufrage abrège le péripl e aux îles Mascareignes (Maurice et La Réunion). On ignore si Baudelaire poursuit son voyage jusqu´aux Indes, de même que la façon dont il est rapatrié.
ellauri145.html on line 224: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/09/Constantin_Guys_-_Jeanne_Duval_%28pr%C3%A9sum%C3%A9%29.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri145.html on line 225: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/93/Baudelaire_en_1844_par_%C3%89mile_Deroy.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri145.html on line 226: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/16/%C3%89tienne_Carjat%2C_Portrait_of_Charles_Baudelaire%2C_circa_1862.jpg/800px-%C3%89tienne_Carjat%2C_Portrait_of_Charles_Baudelaire%2C_circa_1862.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri145.html on line 233: Dandy endetté, Baudelaire est pl acé sous tutelle judiciaire et mène dès 1842 une vie dissolue. Il commence alors à composer pl usieurs poèmes des Fleurs du mal. Critique d´art et journaliste, il défend Delacroix comme représentant du romantisme en peinture, mais aussi Balzac lorsque l´auteur de La Comédie humaine est attaqué et caricaturé pour sa passion des chiffres ou sa perversité présumée. En 1843, il découvre les « paradis artificiels » dans le grenier de l´appartement familial de son ami Louis Ménard, où il goûte à la confiture verte. Même s´il contracte une colique à cette occasion, cette expérience semble décupl er sa créativité (il dessine son autoportrait en pied, très démesuré) et renouvellera cette expérience occasionnellement sous contrôle médical, en participant aux réunions du « club des Haschischins ». En revanche, son usage de l´opium est pl us long : il fait d´abord, dès 1847, un usage thérapeutique du laudanum17, prescrit pour combattre des maux de tête et des douleurs intestinales consécutives à une syphilis, probablement contractée vers 1840 durant sa relation avec la prostituée Sarah la Louchette. Comme De Quincey avant lui, l´accoutumance lui dicte d´augmenter progressivement les doses. Croyant ainsi y trouver un adjuvant créatif, il en décrira les enchantements et les tortures.
ellauri145.html on line 236: ploads/2018/05/Schermata-2018-05-14-alle-14.38.12.png" height="200px" />
ellauri145.html on line 251: L´HUMOUR chez Baudelaire fait partie intégrante de sa conception du dandysme. On sait que, pour lui, « le mot dandy impl ique une quintessence de caractère et une intelligence subtile de tout le mécanisme moral de ce monde ». L´humour, nul pl us que lui n´a pris soin de le définir par opposition à la gaieté triviale ou au sarcasme grimaçant dans les quels se pl aît à se reconnaître l´« esprit français ». Il pl ace Molière en tête des « religions modernes ridicules»; Voltaire, c´est « l´antipoète, le roi des badauds, le prince des superficiels, l´antiartiste, le prédicateur des concierges, le père Gigogne des rédacteurs du Siècle ». Le dandy est partagé entre le souci narcissique de ses attitudes et de ses actes («Il doit aspirer à être sublime sans interruption. Il doit vivre et mourir devant son miroir ») et le désir de provoquer sur son passage une longue rumeur désapprobatrice (« Ce qu´il y a d´enivrant dans le mauvais goût, c´est le pl aisir aristocratique
ellauri145.html on line 252: de dépl aire »).
ellauri145.html on line 259: Fin de sieclen snobismi ei eroa missään suhteessa Emily in Parisin vastaavasta. Elle est aujourd'hui wagnerienne, esoterique, neo-pl atonicienne, occultiste, androgyne, primitive, baudelairienne, morbide, nietzscheenne meme quand elle eternue. Ei ois kannattanut hävitä 1870 sotaa preussilaisille.
ellauri145.html on line 261: Spl een est le terme anglais qui désigne la rate. Il dérive du grec ancien σπλήν (spl ên), de même sens.
ellauri145.html on line 262: Le spl een baudelairien désigne une profonde mélancolie née du mal de vivre, que Charles Baudelaire exprime dans pl usieurs poèmes de son recueil Les Fleurs du mal. Quoiqu'il l'associe, discrètement, pour qui veut le lire, non pas à un véritable mal mais pl utôt à une rage de vivre. Cette frustration colérique d'un Idéal non réalisé, auquel il ne renonce pourtant pas. Il accompagne finalement le titre de l'ouvrage compl et : Spl een et Idéal. Ce spl een éveille un espoir, aisément distinguable dans ses textes les pl us sombres : « Je suis comme le roi d'un pays pl uvieux, riche, mais impuissant » LXXVII.
ellauri145.html on line 264: Le spl een exprime un état d'asthénie morale qu'expl iquent :
ellauri145.html on line 285: D'humeur dépressive, l'auteur des Fleurs du mal effectue pl usieurs tentatives de suicide. Son état psychique l'inspire artistiquement. Il s'y compl aît même, non sans masochisme. Mais son spl een s'inscrit toujours dans sa quête de l'idéal, auquel il accède parfois grâce à de secrètes correspondances.
ellauri145.html on line 287: La section initiale des Fleurs du mal s'appelle, comme dit précédemment, Spl een et Idéal. Elle inclut quatre poèmes célèbres, regroupés sous le titre Spl een, qui expriment une tristesse morbide, mais non moins volontaire dans son auto-flagellation liée à:
ellauri145.html on line 292: la pesanteur du souvenir et la vacuité de l'existence (II - J'ai pl us de souvenirs que si j'avais mille ans) ;
ellauri145.html on line 294: un mal-être intense, où l'instinct de mort s'installe (III - Je suis comme le roi d'un pays pl uvieux) puis triomphe (IV - Quand le ciel bas et lourd pèse comme un couvercle).
ellauri145.html on line 312: Cependant qu’en un jeu pl ein de sales parfums, Samalla kuin kananmunanhaisevassa pakassa
ellauri145.html on line 320: J’ai pl us de souvenirs que si j’avais mille ans. Mulla on enemmän muistoja kuin tuhatvuotiaalla.
ellauri145.html on line 326: Qui contient pl us de morts que la fosse commune. jossa makaa ruumiita enemmän kuin joukkohaudassa.
ellauri145.html on line 330: Qui s’acharnent toujours sur mes morts les pl us chers. Ja kiusaavat izeään mun rakkaat vainajat.
ellauri145.html on line 331: Je suis un vieux boudoir pl ein de roses fanées, Olen vanha bidee täynnä kuihtuneita ruusuja,
ellauri145.html on line 333: Où les pastels pl aintifs et les pâles Boucher Haikeita vesiväritöitä, kalpeita ezauxia
ellauri145.html on line 340: — Désormais tu n’es pl us, ô matière vivante, - Sitten sua ei enää ole, elävä massa,
ellauri145.html on line 349: Je suis comme le roi d’un pays pl uvieux, Mä olen kuin sateisen maan kuningas
ellauri145.html on line 354: Ni son peupl e mourant en face du balcon. Ei sen alamaisten kuolema kazottuna parvekkeelta.
ellauri145.html on line 356: Ne distrait pl us le front de ce cruel malade ; Ei julman sairaan oza enää siliä,
ellauri145.html on line 360: Ne savent pl us trouver d’impudique toilette Eivät kexi riittävästi säädytöntä asua,
ellauri145.html on line 375: II nous verse un jour noir pl us triste que les nuits; Se kaataa meille öitä mustemman pitkän päivän;
ellauri145.html on line 379: Et se cognant la tête à des pl afonds pourris; Kolhien päätänsä homehtuneisiin kattoihin
ellauri145.html on line 381: Quand la pl uie étalant ses immenses traînées Kun sade levittäen loputtoman laahuxen
ellauri145.html on line 383: Et qu´un peupl e muet d´infâmes araignées Ja kun hirveiden hämähäkkien mykkä kansa
ellauri145.html on line 392: Vaincu, pl eure, et l´Angoisse atroce, despotique, Toivo voitettuna itkee, ja kauhee ahdistus despoottina
ellauri145.html on line 393: Sur mon crâne incliné pl ante son drapeau noir. Mun taipuneelle päälle levittää mustan vaatteensa.
ellauri145.html on line 402: Carroll often denied knowing the meaning behind the poem; however, in an 1896 repl y to one letter, he agreed with one interpretation of the poem as an allegory for the search for happiness. Scholars have found various other meanings in the poem, among them existential angst, an allergy for tuberculosis, and a mockery of the Tichborne case.
ellauri145.html on line 428: Pitäkää pumppunne. Mä en ala enää mitään. Tulen muistamaan tämän pl aneetan. (Toi viimeinen oli oikeasti Akun jouzenlaulu.) Akulainen oli iso idealisti, josta toinen vielä isompi sanoi myöhemmin: Kaikki minkä olen tehnyt, sen olen velkaa Villiersille. Tää hölmö oli Maukka Maeterlinck .
ellauri145.html on line 436: Charles Cros Émile-Hortensius-Charles Cros (October 1, 1842 – August 9, 1888) was a French poet and inventor. He was born in Fabrezan, Aude, France, 35 km to the East of Carcassonne. Cros was a well-regarded poet and humorous writer. He developed various improved methods of photography including an early color photo process. He also invented improvements in telegraph technology. In the early 1870s Cros had published with Mallarmé, Villiers and Verlaine in the short-lived weekly Renaissance littéraire et artistique, edited by Emile Blémont. His poem The Kippered Herring inspired Ernest Coquelin to create what he called monologues, short theatrical pieces whose format was copied by numerous imitators. The piece, translated as The Salt Herring, was translated and illustrated by Edward Gorey. He spent years petitioning the French government to build a giant mirror that could be used to communicate with the Martians and Venusians by burning giant lines on the deserts of those pl anets. He was never convinced that the Martians were not a proven fact, nor that the mirror he wanted was technically impossible to build. Tästä hepusta tulee mieleen Spede Pasanen ja sen hiihtolinko.
ellauri145.html on line 452: Où le bonheur est un suivi de six zéros. Joissa onni on ykkönen pl us kuusi nollaa.
ellauri145.html on line 475: Et pl ante le clou pointu ? toc, toc, toc, Se lyö terävän naulan ? tok 3x
ellauri145.html on line 490: J’ai composé cette histoire ? simpl e, simpl e, simpl e, Kexin tämän jutun ? simppelin 3x
ellauri145.html on line 516: Condemned by ill health and abysmal eyesight to convey his philosophy in short, aphoristic bursts, Nietzsche knew the power of raising a bubble of laughter, only to puncture it as you ponder the further meaning: “Is man God’s mistake, or is God man’s mistake?” “Man does not strive for happiness; only the Englishman does that” – a dig at Jeremy Bentham and John Stuart Mill. “Possession usually diminishes the possession.” “Never trust a thought that occurs to you indoors.” He even makes fun of his readers: “The worst readers are those who behave like pl undering troops: they take away a few things they can use, dirty and confound the remainder, and revile the whole.” Vittu miten säälittäviä on yrityxet osoittaa että jyrkät tyypit olis jotenkin humoristisia. Ei ne vaan ole.
ellauri145.html on line 519: His sister Elisabeth held fascist views. She published an unreliable biography of him and delayed publication of his autobiography, Ecce Homo, until she had deleted all the uncompl imentary references to herself.
ellauri145.html on line 520: Elisabeth greatly admired Mussolini. In 1932 she persuaded the Weimar National theatre to put on a pl ay written by him. Hitler showed up during the performance and presented her with a huge bouquet of flowers.
ellauri145.html on line 526: Heidegger’s analysis of Nietzsche is entirely inauthentic. He alleges that Nietzsche merges a metaphysics of force with a Marxist analysis of labor to create a technological metaphysics of domination - however, Nietzsche’s analysis of force was compl etely counter to Marx’s and the marriage of Nietzsche and Marx is not Nietzsche, but is rather National Socialism, and the philosophical framework of this marriage is none other than Being and Time.
ellauri145.html on line 533: Nietzsche is popular among teenagers for the same reason that Stephen Hawking is well-known among peopl e who aren’t scientists: image.
ellauri145.html on line 535: Intellectuals very often have an image the same way rock stars and movie directors do. There’s the real person, and there’s the body of work they create, and then there’s the image, the popular conception of that person. Most peopl e don’t understand theoretical physics and are not interested in learning the math to do so, and most peopl e probably wouldn’t understand anything in the papers that Hawking has authored or co-authored. But most of us know who Hawking was, not only because he wrote popular books but because he was paralyzed and sat in a wheelchair and had a robot voice. The idea of a theoretical physicist who does all his work with his brain even though his body is destroyed and speaks through a machine is almost like a comic book character, and the popular imagination loves that.
ellauri145.html on line 537: Nietzsche’s image, through no more fault of his own than Hawking´s (LOL), has grown in a similar way to that of Hawking. We all have a vague notion of what the Ubermensch is, we’ve all heard “God is dead,” and we all know Nietzsche was a crazy philosopher with a giant mustache who wrote really hard books and scared his contemporaries and was apparently a favorite of the Nazis. There are little quips and quotes from him around the internet that sound awfully cryptic and enigmatic. And the publishing industry pl ays on this image, too: I have a copy of Beyond Good And Evil with a black cover and the title text printed in red and white, and the color scheme looks a little sinister. I strongly suspect that, if Nietzsche did not have a popular image as a crazy nihilist Nazi Ubermensch from the 1800s, the publisher would not have made the decision to print his books with a black and red color scheme. A cursory look at Amazon’s book listing also shows copies of Thus Spake Zarathustra with a picture of a panther’s eyes on the cover, glowering at the reader. Because… “Nietzsche was that crazy German writer or philosopher or whatever, right? And he was, like, an anarchist or nihilist or Nazi or something, right? Didn’t he kill God or something like that? Yeah.”
ellauri145.html on line 539: What rebellious teenager could resist this kind of thing? You’ve got your long hair, your leather jacket, your Slayer albums and your combat boots. You’ve got a guitar you can almost pl ay. What compl etes that ensemble better than a copy of “The Antichrist,” pl aced conspicuously on your book stand? It’ll scare your parents if they’re religious, it’ll freak out your friends, and maybe you can find a sentence that sounds profound and memorize it so you can win some points for being deep. Get an inch or two deeper between her legs.
ellauri145.html on line 545: The answer to this is very simpl e. Utilitarianism is concerned only with the volume of pl easure and pain, and Nietzsche says in so many words that as soon as you even enter into this kind of thinking, you are already deep into the territory of nihilism . It is passive; concerned with high maintenance, not constructivism; aloof or indifferent to meaning , something to justify the effort in the first pl ace, even when it is successful, let alone when it isn’t. It is the staid, kindly, sober—not to say, the British—version of the same imbecilic nihilism that was prevailing on the continent in the same era. Mill did not understand the difference between pl easure and (counterfactual) happiness, between pain and suffering, between real (spiritual ) slavery and freedom . Eli koska se oli säälittävä mursuwiixinen luuseri.
ellauri145.html on line 551: Although there is certainly a bias toward “masculinity” in Nietzsche’s works, this does not necessarily mean what it is presumed to mean. “Masculinity” is not, for instance a code word for “male”. It does not appl y as a broad category to those who have a certain set of genitals. In fact what the term means is having the sort of virtues that one might have typically related to the masculine virtues that were considered admirable at various times in the past. These include courage, transcendence of petty emotional concerns, fearlessness in the face of death, and so on. Intellectual courage was a particular attribute that Nietzsche was trying to encourage in his readers though his appeal to the term, “masculinity”.
ellauri145.html on line 574: Why do some peopl e seem to view Nietzsche as a lightweight?
ellauri145.html on line 578: Why do some peopl e call Nietzsche "the insane philosopher"?
ellauri145.html on line 580: Why do peopl e tend to have such a low opinion of Friedrich Nietzsche and his philosophy?
ellauri145.html on line 591: Ehkä oireellisesti, Anteron miälestä Nietzschen hauskin pl äjäys oli tää sen viimeinen Wahnsinnszettel. Retun siirtymät murentumisesta (Zerrüttung) luhistumiseen (Zusammenbruch) ja sammahtamiseen (Umnachtung) olivat lyhyitä.
ellauri145.html on line 608: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/26/Friedrich_Nietzsche_Signature.svg/1920px-Friedrich_Nietzsche_Signature.svg.png" width="20%"/>
ellauri145.html on line 634: 8 Kansainväliseen kuuluisuuteen nousseita rikollisia. Kutsumanimellä tunnettu ”Prado” teloitettiin 5. marraskuuta 1888 Pariisissa murhasta tuomittuna, kirjaileva oikeustieteen opiskelija Henri Chambige taas sai marraskuussa 1888 seitsemän vuoden vankeustuomion Algeriassa tekemästään murhasta. Suezin kanavan 1869 rakennuttanut ranskalaisdipl omaatti Ferdinand de Lesseps (1805–1894) joutui, kuten poikansa Charles (1840–1923), oikeuteen 1882 aloitetun ja surkeasti sujuneen Panaman kanavan urakkansa päätteeksi. Tapauksista raportoivat Figaron lisäksi Nietzschen lukemat piemontelaiset lehdet.
ellauri145.html on line 642: 12 Torinolaissyntyinen Carlo Felice Nicolis (1826–1888) eli kreivi Robilant oli Sardinia(-Piemonte)n kuninkaan Carlo Alberton (1798–1849; vallassa 1831– 1849) alaisena työskennellyt dipl omaatti.
ellauri145.html on line 666: Isidore Ducasse (Comte de Lautréamont): excerpts from Maldor and Letters (Also published in Maldor and the Compl ete Works of the Comte de Lautreamont) .
ellauri145.html on line 678: Les Chants de Mal Odor . Ce sont un ouvrage poétique en prose de 1869, composé de six parties nommées « chants ». Il s´agit de la première des trois œuvres de l´auteur Isidore Ducasse pl us connu sous le pseudonyme de comte de Lautréamont. Le livre ne raconte pas une histoire unique et cohérente, mais est constitué d´une suite d´épisodes dont le seul fil conducteur est la présence de Maldoror, un personnage mystérieux et maléfique. The misanthropic, misotheistic character Maldoror is a figure of evil who has renounced conventional morality. Tulee tosta mieleen että Figura-liivejä mainostettiin ennen lehdissä.
ellauri145.html on line 682: L´ouvrage paraît en 1869, dans un relatif anonymat. Il est rapidement oublié, de même que son auteur, mort quelques années pl us tard. Il faut alors attendre la période surréaliste pour voir la popularité de ce livre évoluer. Il a eu une grande influence sur le surréalisme : redécouverte d´abord par Philippe Soupault (en 1917), puis Louis Aragon et André Breton, l´œuvre de Lautréamont ne cessera d´être revendiquée comme livre précurseur du mouvement.
ellauri145.html on line 703: Il faudrait...garder la véracité du document, la précision du détail, la langue étoffée et nerveuse du réalisme, mais il faudrait aussi se faire puisatier d’âme et ne pas vouloir expl iquer le mystère par les maladies des sens; le roman, si cela se pouvait, devrait se diviser de lui-même en deux parts, néanmoins soudées ou pl utôt confondues, comme elles le sont dans la vie, celle de l’âme, celle du corps, et s’occuper de leurs réactifs, de leurs conflits, de leur entente. Il faudrait, en un mot, suivre la grande voie si profondément creusée par Zola, mais il serait nécessaire aussi de tracer en l’air un chemin parallèle, une autre route, d’atteindre les en deçà et les après, de faire, en un mot, un naturalisme spiritualiste... (XII, 1, 10-11)
ellauri145.html on line 707: Durtal admires the documentation of Naturalism, yet wants to open it to the supernatural, to an expl oration of both body and spirit: it will be a kind of “naturalisme spiritualiste” that will follow Zola’s route, but in the air.6 This tension between realism and the supernatural lies at the heart of Là-bas, a novel in which Huysmans follows Durtal’s spiritual transformation as he researches medieval and modern Satanism. Là-bas was a scandalous best-seller. It inspired a great deal of public debate, especially since it was published in the same review and at the same time as Jules Huret’s first Enquête sur l’évolution littéraire, a series of sixty-four interviews conducted with major French authors from March 3 to July 5, 1891.7 This series, which asked its interviewees whether Naturalism was dead, was a phenomenal success read by all of Paris.8 Huret caused every non-Naturalist writer to agree that Zola’s brand of Naturalism was obsolete because it neglected humanity’s soul.
ellauri145.html on line 709: When Zola was interviewed for this series on March 31, one month after Là-bas had begun to appear, even he admitted that it was possible that Naturalism was drawing to a close: “C’est possible. Nous avons tenu un gros morceau du siècle, nous n’avons pas à nous pl aindre; et nous représentons un moment assez spl endide dans l’évolution des idées au dix-neuvième siècle pour ne pas craindre d’envisager l’avenir” (XII, 653).
ellauri145.html on line 727: During his schooling at the Imperial Lycée of Saint-Brieuc where he studied from 1858 until 1860, he fell prey to a deep depression, and, over several freezing winters, contracted the severe rheumatism which was to disfigure him severely. He blamed his parents for having pl aced him there, far from his family´s care and affection. Difficulties in adapting to the harsh discipl ine of the college´s noble débris (distinguished relics, i.e., teachers) gradually developed those characteristics of anarchic disdain and sarcasm which were to give much of his verse its distinctive voice.
ellauri145.html on line 731: Close-packed, linked to the ocean and his Breton roots, and tinged with disdain for Romantic sentimentalism, his work is also characterised by its idiomatic pl ay and exceptional modernity. He was praised by both Ezra Pound and T. S. Eliot (whose work he had a great influence on). Many subsequent modernist poets have also studied him, and he has often been translated into English.
ellauri145.html on line 855: Et commis pl us d´une sottise, On tullut tonttuiltua Mefodina,
ellauri145.html on line 900: Je vais même pl us loin, personne Mä menen vielä pitemmälle, ei kukaan
ellauri145.html on line 922: Je pl ains celui qui n´est pas fou. Ja säälin sitä joka ei sitä ole.
ellauri145.html on line 955: Dans le templ e où prêche un pasteur. Missä saarnaavat sielunpaimenet.
ellauri145.html on line 972: Comme tout un peupl e qui marche Kuten koko poppoo joka kulkee
ellauri145.html on line 1001: Qu´avec des larmes elle impl ore ; Kun se oikein kyynelissä pyytää:
ellauri145.html on line 1011: J´ai pu contempl er sa peinture, Mä oon voinut ihailla sen ezausta
ellauri145.html on line 1029: Tiens ! En veux-tu rien qu´un exempl e ? Kas! Kaipaatko vai esimerkkiä?
ellauri145.html on line 1031: Et trouve sa poche bien ampl e : Niin ezen taskut tuntuu väljiltä:
ellauri145.html on line 1032: « Vends-les-nous, ces pierres du Templ e », "Myy meille temppelistä kivet",
ellauri145.html on line 1036: De sa pl us sainte émotion ! Pyhimmällä tunteella!
ellauri145.html on line 1038: La pl us noble race du monde, Jaloin rotu koko maailmassa,
ellauri145.html on line 1044: Le pl us grand peupl e de la Terre ! Maapallon suurenmoisin kansa!
ellauri145.html on line 1048: Bonne au pl us pour les ateliers ; Kelpaa tallereihin maximisti,
ellauri145.html on line 1055: Arthur Rimbaud: excerpt from A Heart under a Cassok (also published in Compl eted Works, Selected Letters)
ellauri145.html on line 1059: This paper offers a detailed reading of Rimbaud´ s "obscure" prose pom "Dévotion" from the Illuminations. The reading is based on the central principl e that the text is modelled on the form of devotional prayer, a model that Rimbaud adopts only to parody it and transgress against it. Kaikki lukijat on yhtä mieltä että tää on Rimbaudin sepustuxista sekopäisin. Vaik kyllä se aina varoo olemasta selväsanainen, se on epädekadenttia. R. is extremely fond of mystifying his readers.
ellauri145.html on line 1067: À Lulu, - démon - qui a conservé un goût pour les oratoires du temps des Amies et de son éducation incompl ète. Pour les hommes ! À madame ***.
ellauri145.html on line 1077: Aussi bien à tout culte en telle pl ace de culte mémoriale et parmi tels événements qu´ il faille se rendre, suivant les aspirations du moment ou bien notre propre vice sérieux.
ellauri145.html on line 1080: Ce soir, à Circeto des hautes glaces, grasse comme le poisson, et enluminée comme les dix mois de la nuit rouge - (son coeur ambre et spunk), - pour ma seule prière muette comme ces régions de nuit et précédant des bravoures pl us violentes que ce chaos polaire.
ellauri145.html on line 1083: À tout prix et avec tous les airs, même dans des voyages métaphysiques. - Mais pl us alors.
ellauri145.html on line 1112: La Maison Gambier est une fabrique de pipes en terre, située à Givet, fondée à la fin du XVIII e siècle et fermée dans la première moitié du XX e siècle.. Elle se disait la pl us importante fabrique de pipe du monde. Elle l´a été sans doute quelques décennies pour la fabrication de pipes en terre, avant de subir les imitations de ses modèles, puis la concurrence de la pipe en...
ellauri145.html on line 1117: Vitalie grandit sous l´autorité d´une mère autoritaire et conservatrice qui lui inculque une éducation stricte basée sur la morale chrétienne. À la différence de ses deux frères Frédéric et Arthur, qui étaient passés par l´institut Rossat, structure privée mais laïque d´excellente réputation, elle est pensionnaire chez les religieuses du couvent des Sépulcrines, situé pl ace du Sépulcre, actuellement pl ace Jacques-Félix.
ellauri145.html on line 1126: Alphonse Allais , né le 20 octobre 1854 à Honfleur et mort le 28 octobre 1905 à Paris, est un journaliste, écrivain et humoriste français. Célèbre à la Belle Époque, reconnu pour sa pl ume acerbe et son humour absurde, il est notamment renommé pour ses calembours et ses vers holorimes. Il est parfois mais pas souvent considéré comme l´un des pl us grands conteurs de langue française.
ellauri145.html on line 1128: Alphonse Allais est le cadet d´une fratrie de cinq enfants, de Charles Auguste Allais (1825-1895), pharmacien, 6, pl ace de la Grande-Fontaine de Honfleur (aujourd´hui pl ace Hamelin) et d´Alphonsine Vivien (1830-1927).
ellauri145.html on line 1130: Jusqu´à l´âge de trois ans, il ne prononce pas un mot, sa famille le croyait muet. À l´école, il semble pl utôt se destiner à une carrière scientifique : il passe à seize ans son baccalauréat en sciences. Recalé à cause des oraux d´histoire et de géographie, il est finalement reçu l´année suivante. Il devient alors stagiaire dans la pharmacie de son père qui ambitionne pour lui une succession tranquille, mais qui goûte peu ses expériences et ses faux médicaments et l´envoie étudier à Paris. En fait d´études, Alphonse préfère passer son temps aux terrasses des cafés ou dans le jardin du Luxembourg, et ne se présente pas à l´un des examens de l´école de pharmacie. Son père, s´apercevant que les fréquentations extra-estudiantines de son fils ont pris le pas sur ses études, décide de lui couper les vivres.
ellauri145.html on line 1132: Pour subsister, Alphonse Allais s´essaye d´abord à la photographie, sur les traces de son ami Charles Cros, mais ne connaît pas le succès. Il décide alors de s´essayer au métier de journaliste, publiant des chroniques loufoques dans diverses revues parisiennes. Avec ses amis du Quartier latin, il fait aussi partie de pl usieurs groupes fantaisistes comme « les Fumistes, « les Hydropathes » ou « les Hirsutes ».
ellauri145.html on line 1140: Le nuit precedent sa demise, il a fait cette dernière pl aisanterie : « Demain je serai mort ! Vous trouvez ça drôle, mais moi je ne ris pas. Demain, je serai mort !
ellauri145.html on line 1157: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/96/Brisset_Banquet.jpg/330px-Brisset_Banquet.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri145.html on line 1158: The Prince of Thinkers welcomed and appl auded in Paris.
ellauri145.html on line 1162: In 1871, he published La natation ou l’art de nager appris seul en moins d’une heure (Learning the art of swimming alone in less than an hour), then resigned from the Army and moved to Marseilles. Here he filed a patent for the "airlift swimming trunks and belt with a double compensatory reservoir". This commercial endeavor was a compl ete failure. He returned to Magdeburg, where he earned his living as a language teacher, developing a method for learning French, which he self-published in 1874.
ellauri145.html on line 1225: Sofi Oxanen odottaa lasta Aku Louhimieheltä. Tack Aku för en otroligt FIN fittuppl evelse! Laura Malmivaaran tyttäret antoivat tälle suoraa palautetta, kun äiti päkisti kirjan Vaiti – Laura päätti kuitenkin pysyä kovana, kun ex-puoliso joutui pyllyn silmään. Kolme vuotta sitten Laura Malmivaara pääsi onnekkaasti keskelle metoo-kohua. Toisella puolen seisoivat näyttelijäkollegat yhdessä rintamassa. Vazapuolella oli Lauran ex-puoliso ja lasten isä, eklottava Aku paskapökäle. – Oli rasittavaa mutta ihanaa olla siinä paineiden ja kameroiden ristitulessa.
ellauri146.html on line 34:
der Meffias. play:none">Hölzernes
ellauri146.html on line 96: TEUFEL. So will ich Ihnen denn sagen, daß dieser Inbegriff des Alls, den Sie mit dem Namen Welt beehren, weiter nichts ist, als ein mittelmäßiges Lustspiel, welches ein unbärtiger, gelbschnabeliger Engel, der in der ordentlichen, dem Menschen unbegreiflichen Welt lebt, und wenn ich nicht irre, noch in Prima sitzt, während seiner Schulferien zusammengeschmiert hat. Das Exem
pl ar, in dem wir uns befinden, steht, glaube ich, in der Leihbibliothek zu X, und eben jetzt wird es von einer hübschen Dame gelesen, welche den Verfasser kennt und ihm heute abend, d. h. über sechs Trillionen Jahre, beim Teetische ihr Urteil darüber mitteilen will.
ellauri146.html on line 124:
Rudolf von Gottschall (1823–1909) oli saksalainen kirjailija, aikansa Saksan monipuolisimpia. Gottschall oli lyyrikko (Neue Gedichte), eepikko (Carlo Zeno, Maja), hän kirjoitti romaaneja (Im Banne des schwarzen Adlers) ja erityisesti näytelmiä: hänen merkittäviä murhenäytelmiään ovat Mazeppa, Der Nabob, Katharina Howard, König Karl XII, Herzog Bernhard von Weimar ja Amy Robsart. Hän kirjoitti myös komedioita, kuten Fix und Fox, Die Di
pl omaten, Der Spion von Rheinsberg. Mit einer Doktorarbeit über die römischen Strafen bei Ehebruch wurde er 1846 in Königsberg promoviert. De adulterii poenis iure romano constitutis. Gottschalls fortschrittliches Schaffen war zu seinen Lebzeiten geachtet, seine Dramen wurden gern gespielt. Seine Werke zeichneten sich vor allem durch unabhängige Urteilskraft, aber auch durch zeitbezogene Kritik aus, was mit dazu beigetragen hat, dass er nach seinem Tode schnell in Vergessenheit geriet. Lisäksi hän oli kirjallisuushistorioitsija ja esteetikko. Kirjallisuudentutkijana hän julkaisi teoksen Poetik. Vittuako se selitti tossa suorasanaisesti mitä Grabbe kertoo ize paljon hauskemmin? Taitaa olla kuivuri. Saima Harmaja on suomentanut Gottschallin runon "Ken nokkivi ikkunaa? Lupsa!", jonka on säveltänyt Kari Haapala.
ellauri146.html on line 148: Gottschall was also a noted chess
pl ayer. Obwohl er Funktionär des Schachsports und regelmäßiger Besucher der Augustea war, spielte er zeitlebens bei keinem einzigen Schachturnier. Viisasteli takapiruna kuin K. Koskenniemi.
ellauri146.html on line 166: MOLLFELS. Soll ich ihnen was vorschlagen? Dichten Sie künftig nichts als Trauerspiele! Wenn Sie denselben nur die gehörige Mittelmäßigkeit verleihen, so ist es unmöglich, daß Sie nicht den rauschendsten Ap
pl aus einernteten! Sie müssen insbesondere den Plan der Stücke hübsch winzig und flach gestalten, sonst möchte ihn nicht jeder kurzsichtige Schafskopf überblicken können, – Sie müssen dem Verstande und dem Forschungsgeiste der Leser nicht das geringste zumuten und wenn durch ein Unglück eine hervorstechende Szene mit unterlaufen sollte, sorgfältig hinterdrein bemerken, was sie abzwecke und in welcher Beziehung auf das Ganze sie zu nehmen sei, – Sie müssen beileibe alles hinlänglich weich kneten, denn das Weiche gefällt, und wenn es auch nur nasser Dreck wäre, – vorzüglich aber müssen Sie stets den Geschmack der Damen im Auge behalten, denn diese, welche noch niemals von einem wahren Dichter als berufene Richterinnen anerkannt sind, gelten jetzt im Reiche der Kunst als oberste Appellationsinstanz; ob man sie entweder wegen ihrer kränklichen Nerven oder wegen ihrer Geschicklichkeit im Scharpiezupfen dazu erwählt hat, ist eine unentschiedene Frage. Desto entschiedener ist es, Herr Rattengift, daß man Sie, wenn Sie Gewalt genug besitzen, um diese Regeln zu verachten, als einen blindlaufenden, verrückten, rohen Phantasten verschreit, der Schönheiten und Erbärmlichkeiten wild nebeneinanderkleckst. Ständen Homer oder Shakspeare erst jetzt mit ihren Werken auf, so wären Beurteilungen zu erwarten, in denen die Iliade ein unsinniges Gemengsel und der Lear ein bombastischer Saustall genannt würde; ja, manche Rezensenten gäben vielleicht dem Homer einen wohlgemeinten Fingerzeig, sich nach der Bezauberten Rose emporzubilden, oder geböten dem Shakspeare, fleißig in den Romanen der Helmina von Chezy oder der Fanny Tarnow zu studieren, um daraus Menschenkenntnis zu lernen.
ellauri146.html on line 218: Keskinkertainen Gottschall on keskinkertaisemman Aarne Kinnusen kanssa samoilla sovinnaisilla herrasväen linjoilla: Ueberhaupt bedarf das komische Lied eines geschmackvollen Haltes, in seiner ausgelassenen Stimmung einer sittlichen Hemmung, wenn es nicht in eine
pl ebeje Zotenpoesie ausarten oder jenen dilettantischen Reimschmieden und Versmachern anheimfallen soll, welche in die Saiten greifen, wie des Silen's Maulesel in die Saiten Apoll's. Schmack schmack, sehr smackhaft.
ellauri146.html on line 220: ...Da lernte Grabbe Ludwig Robert kennen, den Bruder der schönen, von Heine gefeierten Schwester, einen der geistvollsten Epigonen der Romantik; aber auch Heinrich Heine selbst, der seine Tragödien Almansor und Ratcliff gerade damals erscheinen ließ und von dem einer der ironischen Freunde berichtet, mit welchem Selbstgefallen seine ungefällige Gestalt damals unter den Linden vor Dümmlers Buchladen »vorbei peripatetisierte,« mit Armensünderwänglein, über welche
pl ötzliche Glut sich ergoß, sobald er sein Werk zum Fenster herausgucken sah. Heines Eigentümlichkeit als Mensch und Dichter hatte für Grabbe viel Sympathisches; er berührte eine verwandte Ader in ihm und blieb gewiß auf die Ausbildung eines, dem idealen Schwung nachspottenden Cynismus, der überall bei Grabbe hervortritt, nicht ohne Einfluß. Damals konnte Heine nicht ahnen, als er den Meister eines phantastischen Humors, den Serapionsbruder Amadeus Hoffmann, zu Grabe tragen sah, daß dasselbe schmerzliche Leiden, welches diese gnomenartige Persönlichkeit hinweggerafft hatte, auch ihn einst an ein langjähriges Krankenlager fesseln werde.
ellauri146.html on line 230: „Die Liebe muß sein
pl atonisch“, "Paras rakkaus on henkistä",
ellauri146.html on line 256:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/b5/Max_stirner.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri146.html on line 284: Stor betydelse för den litterära utvecklingen hade Klopstock även genom sin "barpoesi", det vill säga oden och dramer som förhärligade den germanska draftbirran. Formellt står dessa verk, som bland annat försökte ersätta klassisk mytologi med en germaniserad nordisk under inflytande av James Macpherson och Ossians sånger. Genom sin höga självkänsla och föga uppfattning om diktarens kall, framlagd bland annat i Die deutsche Gelehrtenpublik (1784), bidrog Klopstock kraftigt till att höja självaktningen hos diktkonstens utövare. Bland de många utgåvorna av Klopstocks verk märks en praktup
pl aga i 7 band (1798-1809) och Sämmtliche Werke i 21 band (123-39). Präktiga böcker, ser fina ut i bokregalen!
ellauri146.html on line 365: Eloa comes from the throne of God, and proclaims that now the Redeemer is led to death, on which the angels of the earth form a circle round Mount Calvary, also nam'd Golgotha. Then, having consecrated that hill, he worships the Messiah. Gabriel conducts the souls of the fathers from the sun to the Mount for olives, and Adam addresses the earth. Satan and Adramelech, hovering in triumph, are put to flight by Eloa. Jesus is nail'd to the cross. The thoughts of Adam. The conversion of one of the malefactors. Uriel
pl aces a
pl anet before the sun, and then conducts to the earth the souls of all the future generations of mankind. Eve, seeing them coming, addresses them. Eloa ascends to Heaven. Eve is affected at seeing Mary. Two angels of death fly round the cross. Eve addresses the Saviour, and the souls of the children yet unborn. Claptrap does a lot of addressing in the epos. Hope the letters reach the sender, unlike Elvis's:
ellauri146.html on line 402: As any reader of Vigny's poem knows, Eloa descends from heaven to console and save Satan. It is suggested that if she had succeeded, evil might have ceased to exist, but Vigny does not permit this to happen. Instead, Satan seduces Eloa and causes her to fall with him to the depths of hell. Despite the failure of Eloa's attempt, the fact remains that Vigny lays out the essential elements of what I call the myth of the angel woman and the end of evil; he links together the divine feminine princi
pl e and the redemption of humanity. This constitutes one of the major original elements of Eloa.
ellauri146.html on line 404: We tend not to focus on this view of Eloa as a myth of the redeeming feminine for several reasons. First, the central portion of the poem is devoted to Satan's seduction of Eloa, an activity which, for most of us, is anything but celestial. Perhaps this ex
pl ains Stendhal's sarcastic description of Eloa in the Courrier anglais of 1 December 1824: "Tex-Willer-larme, devenue ange femelle, et séduite par le diable lui-même" (the ex-tear, turned into a female angel, and seduced by the devil himself). Flottes and Bonnefoy insist that the very fine psychological analysis of the seduction makes us see human protagonists in an angelic decor, which weakens any metaphysical meaning Vigny might attach to his poem. Germain, who had the benefit of Hunt's masterly work, The Epic in Ninteenth Century France (1941), states flatly that the drama of Eloa is not metaphysical but moral. Bénichou, however, does remark in Le Sacre de l'écrivain 1750-1830 (1973) that the creation of Eloa corresponds to the theological promotion of the feminine as an agent of redemption prominent in the religious sects of the Romantic period. I am sure Satan was greatly consoled by Eloa, if that's any consolation.
ellauri146.html on line 406: The second reason we tend not to see Eloa in this light is the emphasis scholars have
pl aced on the Romantic rehabilitation of Satan. We have not had adequate corresponding emphasis on the concomitant rehabilitation of women. Kyllä kai. Eloa löytyy albumista
405.
ellauri146.html on line 420: Vignyn maailmankuva oli hyvin pessimistinen mutta ei mieskohtaisista syistä, kuten Chateaubriandilla tai Byronilla, vaan pessimismi kohoaa yleisinhimilliseksi maailmankuvaksi, jossa on kosketuskohtia Lucretiukseen. Varhaisina vuosinaan Vigny vaikutti Hugohon ja myös Alfred Musset ja Charles Baudelaire saivat häneltä vaikutteita. Hän jätti jäljen myös parnassolaisiin (onneton Sully Prudhomme) ja symbolistiseen runouteen. Vignyn kootut teokset Oeuvres ilmestyivät 1837–1839, 1883–1885 ja 1904–1906. Théâtre ilmestyi 1838–1839, Poésies com
pl ètes 1842, Théâtre com
pl et 1848.
ellauri146.html on line 443: Comme un doux léopard elle est sou
pl e et répand Hiän on notkea ja venyvä kuin puuma
ellauri146.html on line 446: Sont brûlants du
pl aisir que son regard demande, Palaa halusta jota hiänen kaze komentaa,
ellauri146.html on line 450: Ses flancs,
pl us élancés que ceux de la gazelle, Hiänen kyljet, soreat kuin gasellin,
ellauri146.html on line 459: Par la puissante main sous sa tête
pl acée. Jätin pitäessä mämmikouraa hiuxilla.
ellauri146.html on line 482: Car
pl us le fleuve est grand et
pl us il est ému. Sillä vuolas joki virtaa nopeammin.
ellauri146.html on line 486: Quand ses yeux sont en
pl eurs, il lui faut un baiser. Kun sen silmät vettyy, se kaipaa pusua.
ellauri146.html on line 488: Vient un autre combat
pl us secret, traître et lâche ; Seuraa toinen salaisempi erä, petkunterä!
ellauri146.html on line 490: Et,
pl us ou moins, la Femme est toujours Dalila. Ja yhtä kaikki nainen on aina Delila.
ellauri146.html on line 495: À sa
pl us belle amie elle en a fait l’aveu : Parhaalle kaverille se tunnustaa:
ellauri146.html on line 497: « Un Maître lui fait peur. C’est le
pl aisir qu’elle aime, Ei se halua komentajaa, vaan viihdettä,
ellauri146.html on line 516: Puisant dans l’amour seul
pl us de sainte vigueur Ja mä panin siihen enemmänkin tehoja
ellauri146.html on line 520: Et trois fois a versé des
pl eurs fallacieux Ja 3x itkenyt krokodiilinkyyneliä
ellauri146.html on line 522: Honteuse qu’elle était,
pl us encor qu’étonnée, Vähän häveten enempi pettyneenä,
ellauri146.html on line 538: Interdire à ses yeux de voir ou de
pl eurer, Kieltää silmiään näkemästä, itkemässä,
ellauri146.html on line 549: La
pl acèrent debout, silencieusement, Laittaa pystyasentoon vähin äänin
ellauri146.html on line 554: Dont le bruit s’entendait du mont le
pl us lointain ; Alkaa bileet jotka kuuluu yläkertaan asti,
ellauri146.html on line 614:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6b/Ruta_de_Balboa_1513.jpg/250px-Ruta_de_Balboa_1513.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri146.html on line 615:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/23/Primer_avistamiento_del_Pacif%C3%ADco..jpg/220px-Primer_avistamiento_del_Pacif%C3%ADco..jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri146.html on line 618:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1e/Vasco_-N%C3%BA%C3%B1ez_de_Balboa.jpg/220px-Vasco_-N%C3%BA%C3%B1ez_de_Balboa.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri146.html on line 619:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/20/Playa_de_Buena_Vista%2C_1%C2%BA_toma_de_posesi%C3%B3n_de_Balboa.jpg/220px-Playa_de_Buena_Vista%2C_1%C2%BA_toma_de_posesi%C3%B3n_de_Balboa.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri146.html on line 622:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/36/Execution_of_Balboa.jpg/300px-Execution_of_Balboa.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri146.html on line 623:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b9/Un_cuarto_de_Balboa.jpg/220px-Un_cuarto_de_Balboa.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri146.html on line 640: Poe commented on the general meaning of his story several times. In one unsigned review of the number of the Southern Literary Messenger that contained it he said, “Lionizing ... is an admirable piece of burlesque which dis
pl ays much reading, a lively humor, and an ability to afford amusement or instruction”; and in another puff of smoke he remarked, “It is an extravaganza ... and gives evidence of high powers of fancy and humor.”‡ To J. P. Kennedy he wrote on February 11, 1836 that it was a satire “properly speaking [page 172:] — at least so meant —... of the rage for Lions and the facility of becoming one.”
ellauri146.html on line 654: Poe, unlike other great American writers of his time, spent a considerable portion of his childhood in Britain. In 1815, John Allan set out for England, accompanied by his wife, Frances Allan; his sister-in-law, “Aunt Nancy” Valentine; and his six-year-old foster son, Edgar Poe. For a time Edgar attended the small London school of Miss Dubourg (a name which subsequently was to appear in “The Murders in the Rue Morgue”) and later, for a period of three years from 1817 to 1820, was sent to a better school, the Manor House at Stoke Newington near London. Here Poe, in addition to being affected profoundly by the atmosphere of England, studied French, Latin, history and literature. The Manor House School, with its “Dr.” Bransby, Poe later was to trans
pl ant bodily to the semi-autobiographical tale “William Wilson” (1840).
ellauri146.html on line 660: The Richmond which Poe knew was (more than Philadelphia or New York) aristocratic and English. Virginia society, Poe himself noted, had been as “absolutely aristocratical as any in Europe.” This is not to im
pl y the existence of any chasmal gulf separating the American and British minds, respectively, in the first half of the nineteenth century; but it was in Virginia, probably, that the least divergence was to be discerned.
ellauri146.html on line 676: Poe’s first great champion and biographer was the Englishman Ingram. So strong was Poe’s affinity with the life of Europe that legend has carried him there in spite of reality, and it is with some ineffectuality that his biographers ex
pl ain that he at no time visited Ireland, Greece, France or Russia.
ellauri146.html on line 678: As a critic, Poe often expressed national sentiments. He urged Americans to build their own literature, to avoid a blind adulation of, or slavish imitation of, Europeans sim
pl y because they were Europeans. But at the same time, Poe warned against literary chauvanism, which tended to overpraise every dull American writer sim
pl y because he happened to be American. Poe’s detached and objective attitude could become, and often did become, highly critical of American society and America
ellauri146.html on line 681: “We have no aristocracy of blood, and having therefore as a natural, and indeed as an inevitable thing, fashioned for ourselves an aristocracy of dollars, the dis
pl ay of wealth has here to take the
pl ace and perform the office of the heraldic dis
pl ay in monarchical countries. By a transition readily understood, and which might have been as readily foreseen, we have been brought to merge in sim
pl e show our notions of taste itself.”
ellauri146.html on line 686: started with the queerest idea conceivable, viz; that all men are born free and equal-this in the very teeth of the laws of gradation so visibly impressed upon all things both in the moral and physical universe. Every man “voted,” as they called it-that is to say, meddled with public affairs-until, at length, it was discovered that what is everybody’s business is nobody’s, and that the “Republic” (as the absurd thing was called) was without a government at all. It is related, however, that the first circumstance which disturbed, very particularly, the self-com
pl acency of the philosophers who constructed this “Republic,” was the startling discovery that universal suffrage gave opportunity for fraudulent schemes….A little reflection upon this discovery sufficed to render evident the consequences, which were that rascality must predominate— in a word, that a republican government could never be anything but a rascally one. While the philosophers, however, were busied in blushing at their stupidity in not having foreseen these inevitable evils, and intent upon the invention of new theories, the matter was put to an abrupt issue by a fellow of the name of Mob, who took everything into his own hands and set up a despotism…. As for republicanism, no analogy could be found for it upon the face of the earth—unless we except the case of the “prairie dogs,” an exception which seems to demonstrate, if anything, that democracy is a very admirable form of government—for dogs.
ellauri146.html on line 688: In a review of 1836 Poe referred to the “bigoted lover of abstract Democracy” and appealed to Americans to divert their minds “from that perpetual and unhealthy excitement about the forms and machinery” of government to a greater care of the results of government-“the happiness of a peo
pl e.”
ellauri146.html on line 696: Historia todistaa että jenkkipuolueiden kilpailussa ei oikeasti ole ollut kymysys mistään kullin orjuudesta tai vitun vapaudesta vaan valtasuhteista teollistuneen pohjoisen (liukkaiden rannikoiden) ja agraarisen etelän (ruostuneen keskilännen) välillä. Aluxi oli Jeffersonin rep-dem party joka vastusti federalisteja. Van Burenin demokraatit aloitti muka abolitionisteina, muzitten tuli riitaa Unionista, ja kenttäpuolet vaihtuivat. Sisällissodassa pohjoisvaltiot oli rebublikaanisia pyrkyreitä aaseja ja etelästä tuli konservatiivisia orjuutta peukuttavia "demokraattisia" efelantteja. Sitä mukaan kuin rebublikaanit rikastuivat laissez faire kapitalismilla niistä tuli nykyisiä konservatiiveja joita kannustaa keskilännen persulaskukkaat. Liukkaat talousliberaalit
pl us pahnanpohjimmaiset on nyt "vasemmistossa". Samaa paskaa ne on kaikki joka käänteessä. Hizi kyllä Marx oli niin oikeassa, aatteet on pelkkää pyllyverhoa, pintavaahtoa.
ellauri146.html on line 762: With ap
pl es Omenien kera
ellauri146.html on line 853:
ploads/2012/02/aBild-23.jpg" />
ellauri146.html on line 864: The ban on communist symbols resulted in the removal of hundreds of statues, the re
pl acement of street signs and the renaming of populated
pl aces including some of Ukraine's biggest cities like DniproPetrovsk (sorry, Dnipro). The city administration of Dnipro estimated in June 2015 that 80 streets, embankments, squares, and boulevards would have to be renamed. Maxim Eristavi of Hromadske.TV estimated late April 2015 that the nationwide renaming would cost around $1.5 billion. The legislation also granted special legal status to veterans of the "struggle for Ukrainian independence" from 1917 to 1991 (the lifespan of the Soviet Union). The same day, the parliament also passed a law that re
pl aced the term "Great Patriotic War" in the national lexicon with "World War II" from 1939 to 1945 (instead of 1941–45 as is the case with the "Great Patriotic War"). A change of great significance.
ellauri146.html on line 868: In March 2014 Lenin Square in Dnipropetrovsk was renamed "Heroes of Maidan Square" in honor of the peo
pl e killed during Euromaidan and the statue of Lenin was removed. Two years later, in May 2016, the city was renamed Dnipro. In February 2019, it was announced that the oblast of Dnipropetrovsk would be renamed to "Sicheslav" in the future.
ellauri147.html on line 33:
OLEN TYPERÄ KANA play:none">Kotkotusta
ellauri147.html on line 83: Having com
pl eted her university studies, Tyynni took up the teaching of Finnish in evening classes, but the urge to write proved stronger than the duty to teach. Her first poetry collection, Kynttilänsydän (‘Candlewick’), was published in 1938. Two years later she published a second collection Vesilintu (‘waterfowl’). With the outbreak of war, her poetry changed: Lähde ja matkamies (’The spring and the traveller’), Lehtimaja (‘The arbour’) and Soiva metsä (‘The ringing forest’) all reflected the defensive spirit of the country. Tyynni also depicted womanhood, the experiences of women in childbirth and motherhood. Later feminist research in particular has praised Tyynni as a pioneer for her lyrics dealing with childbirth.
ellauri147.html on line 96: The union of these two lyrical writers is generally seen as a happy and creative time. The partners inspired each other as a cou
pl e and as writers. Martti Haavio died in 1973 following a heart attack, and Ale Tyynni-Haavio com
pl eted her husband’s unfinished memoirs and it was published as Olen typerä kana: Martti Haavio - P. Mustapää 20-luvun maisemassa (‘I am still distant: Martti Haavio – P. Mustapää in the 1920s countryside’, 1978).
ellauri147.html on line 111:
pload.wikimedia.org%2Fwikipedia%2Fcommons%2Fthumb%2Ff%2Ff3%2FMartti-Haavio-family.jpg%2F375px-Martti-Haavio-family.jpg&f=1&nofb=1" height="200px" />
ellauri147.html on line 119: Sillä kaikilla ihmisillä on niin ikävää päällä maan, For peo
pl e have such a blasted boring time on the earth,
ellauri147.html on line 145: I have found strength where one does not look for it: in sim
pl e, mild, and
pl easant peo
pl e, without the least desire to rule—and, conversely, the desire to rule has often appeared to me a sign of inward weakness: they fear their own slave soul and shroud it in a royal cloak (in the end, they still become the slaves of their followers, their fame, etc.) The powerful natures dominate, it is a necessity, they need not lift one finger. Even if, during their lifetime, they bury themselves in a garden house! Like my sister Elizabeth för instance! Now there is a Willenmensch if ever there was one! I hardly dare to sneak to the loo for a jerk from our Gartenhaus.
ellauri147.html on line 150: Some interpreters also upheld a biological interpretation of the Wille zur Macht, making it equivalent with Darwinism. For exam
pl e, the concept was appropriated by some Nazis such as Alfred Bäumler, who may have drawn influence from it or used it to justify their expansive quest for power.
ellauri147.html on line 161: Derrida is careful not to confine the will to power to human behavior, the mind, metaphysics, nor physical reality individually. It is the underlying life princi
pl e inaugurating all aspects of life and behavior, a self-preserving force. A sense of entropy and the eternal return, which are related, is always indissociable from the will to power. The eternal return of all memory initiated by the will to power is an entropic force again inherent to all life. What bladderdash.
ellauri147.html on line 167: Nietzsche's "Will to power" and "Will to seem" embrace many of our views, which again resemble in some respects the views of Féré and the older writers, according to whom the sensation of
pl easure originates in a feeling of power, that of pain in a feeling of feebleness (Ohnmacht).
ellauri147.html on line 169: Adler's adaptation of the will to power was and still is in contrast to Sigismund Freud's
pl easure princi
pl e or the "will to
pl easure", and to
Viktor Frankl's logotherapy or the "will to meaning". Adler's intent was to build a movement that would rival, even sup
pl ant, others in psychology by arguing for the holistic integrity of psychological well-being with that of social equality. His interpretation of Nietzsche's will to power was concerned with the individual patient's overcoming of the superiority-inferiority dynamic.
ellauri147.html on line 177:
Emily in Paris is an American-French comedy-drama streaming television series created by Barren Star, which premiered on Netflix on October 2, 2020. The series stars
Lily "Mr." Collins as the eponymous Emily, an American who moves to Paris to provide an American point of view to Savior, a French marketing firm. There, she struggles to succeed in the work
pl ace while searching for sex and experiencing a culture clash with her "boring" and small-minded Midwestern U.S. upbringing. It also stars Ashley Park, Philippine Leroy-Beaulieu, Lucas Bravo, the cast's one and only spooky sooty tarbaby coon Samuel Arnold, Camille Razat, and Bruno Gouery. Lystikästä että "boring" pitää laittaa scare quoteihin. 91% piti tästä ohjelmasta. 91% ei kazonut.
ellauri147.html on line 203: Emily's boss Madeline prepares to make the transition from the Chicago based pharmaceutical marketing firm, the Gilbert Group, to a French based fashion firm, Savior, when she discovers that she is pregnant. She offers the job to Emily and she accepts, leaving her boyfriend back in Chicago. Emily moves to Paris despite the fact that she does not speak French. She moves into the 5th floor of an old apartment building without an elevator but with a wonderful Parisian view. Emily creates an Instagram account, @emilyinparis, and begins documenting her time in Paris. Emily starts her first day of work much to her new co-workers chagrin who reveal that she was only hired because of a business deal. She introduces the French to American social media strategies who seem very reluctant about her and her American methods. Emily accidentally tries to enter the wrong apartment and bangs her very attractive neighbor right at the door, Gabriel. As Emily accustoms to life in Paris she makes countless faux-pas and the firm nicknames her "la
pl ouc" or "the hick". Emily meets Mindy Chen, a nanny originally from Shanghai, and they become fast friends. After Emily and her boyfriend attempt to have cybersex but the connection fails, she
pl ugs in her vibrator and accidentally short-circuits the block's power. "Accidentally" is the top frequency word in the script.
ellauri147.html on line 207: Emily's boyfriend tells her that she should return to Chicago, since he struggles with a long distance relationship, and he does not want to visit Paris, despite a pre-
pl anned trip. She declines returning to Chicago and breaks off the relationship without so much as beg your leave. She turns to Mindy for emotional support. Mindy's slanty eyes have most likely been operated on.
ellauri147.html on line 211: Mindy offers to throw a dinner party to help Emily meet new peo
pl e but the party instead turns into a rager. Despite meeting a cute French boy Emily ends up going back to Gabriel's restaurant.
ellauri147.html on line 234: Emily´s co-workers inform her that in France it can be a long, arduous process to fire an em
pl oyee, unlike at home in the good old U of S. To realize his dream of opening his own restaurant, Gabriel decides to move Emily back to Normandy. The next day Emily is called by Mathieu about the situation and tells her that Pierre has requested to see her. Sylvie overhears this and goes with Emily to see Pierre. At the atelier, they see a dress from Pierre´s new collection.
ellauri147.html on line 236: Pierre orders Mathieu to find him a new venue. Mindy agrees to emcee and sing at a drag bar two nights a week, but when she tells her em
pl oyers, they fire her so she moves in with Emily. In need of a venue to launch his fashion show, Pierre hijacks the outside of his former venue to show his new look dress collection which the audience loves and makes him the toad of Fashion Week. To celebrate, Emily hosts a dinner at Gabriel´s restaurant for Mathieu and Pierre. The 3 mousketeers take turns at Mr. Collins´s back door.
ellauri147.html on line 240: Many scenes are filmed in Paris, Texas, at Place de l´Estrapade in the 5th Arrondissement, including the site of Emily´s first apartment, the restaurant ("Les Deux Compères"), and the bakery ("La Boulangerie Moderne"). Some scenes are also filmed at Cité du Cinéma, a famous film studio com
pl ex in Denver. Famous Parisian sites to feature in the series as digitally prepared miniatures include: Le Grand Véfour, the Pont Alexandre III, Palais Garnier, L´Atelier des Lumières, Rue de l´Abreuvoir, Jardin du Luxembourg, Jardin Du Palais Royale, Café de Flore and the Panthéon. An episode was also filmed at the Château de Sonnay in the department of Indre-et-Loire. Additional photography took
pl ace in Chicago during November 2019.
ellauri147.html on line 249: Nevertheless, not all critics were this kind to the Emily character. Emma Gray from HuffPost called Emily a bland character, stating "The show doesn´t even make an effort to quirk her up or give her a more relatable, girl-next-door roughness: she´s always immaculately coiffed and made-up, and garbed in effortfully eye-catching outfits. But there´s not much to the character, except for enormous amounts of self-confidence and the inex
pl icable ability to attract new friends and love interests on every street corner." Rebecca Nicholson of The Guardian gave the series one out of five stars: "if it is an attempt to fluff up the romcom for the streaming age, then it falls over on its six-inch heels." Rachel Handler opined "Darren Star has done it yet again: centered an entire show on a thin, gently delusional white woman whimsically ex
pl oring a major metropolitan area in wildly expensive couture purchased on a mid-level salary."
ellauri147.html on line 255: Some critics appeared ambivalent, such as Jo Ellison writing for the Financial Times. On one hand she expresses admiration for the way Darren Star manages to depict "a version of womanhood in which promiscuity, bossiness and shopaholicism are depicted as qualities to be celebrated"; on the other "the major
pl ot lines might have been written in the 1940s and the Frenchies are routinely cast as vain, preening and parochial." She concludes "Cliché-ridden and com
pl etely outdated: Darren Star´s ´Sex and the Cité´ will no doubt be monstrously successful."
ellauri147.html on line 261: Megan Garber of The Atlantic was critical of the character Emily, writing, "An expat who acts like a tourist, she judges everything against the backdrop of her own rigid Americanness. You might figure that those moments are evidence of a show poking fun at its protagonist´s arrogance, or setting the stage for her to grow beyond her initial provincialism. But: You would be, as I was, mostly incorrect. Instead, other peo
pl e change around her, becoming French-American. They grudgingly concede that her way (strident, striving, teeming with insistent individualism) is the right way. The show — the latest from the Sex and the City creator Darren Star — is selling several fantasies. Primary among them is the notion that Emily can bulldoze her way through France and be celebrated for it.
ellauri147.html on line 279:
Phil Collins on maailman 2. rikkain rumpali Ringo Starrin jälkeen, ja 1. tyhmin. Jönsin ikäinen keppikuntoinen hyvinkin sairas pullottelija, jolta en kyllä muista ensimmäistäkään biisiä.Se soitti aluxi yhtyeessä nimeltä 1. Moos. Sen ykkös k
pl on Something in The Air, muttei kuitenkaan kai se Fandango. Se taisi olla Abba-silliä. Joo ei tää Phil on aika takatukkamusaa, samaa mitä Rampe ja Naukkis soittaa K-kaupan perällä sähköpianolla.
ellauri147.html on line 281:
ploads/2019/11/27145228/phil-collins-2.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 286:
ploads/2019/11/27145233/phil-collins-3.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 291:
ploads/2019/11/27145224/phil-collins-1.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 298:
ploads/2019/11/27145308/phil-collins-11.jpeg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 311: She met the love of her life, Phil Collins, in 1980. The cou
pl e exchanged the wedding vows on August 4, 1984. Five years after their marriage, the husband and wife were blessed with a girl child. Blessé par une bébé. They named their daughter Lily Collins. Jos ukki Telemannilta olisi kysytty, sen nimi olis Sharon.
ellauri147.html on line 318: The beginning of the end started when Phil started having an affair with Orianne Cevey. "That one
pl ace" had an awful itch.
ellauri147.html on line 320:
ploads/sites/3/2020/10/orianne-phil-collins.jpg?quality=90&strip=all&w=1200" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 323: He sent Jill a FAX (!) ex
pl aining how he felt about them and their future. He eventually left his wife and his young daughter and married Orianne in 1999.
ellauri147.html on line 327:
ploads/2019/11/27145311/phil-collins-12.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 334:
ploads/2019/11/27145314/phil-collins-13.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 338: He was disheartened by the news that peo
pl e believed FAX to be the source through which he asked for a divorce.
ellauri147.html on line 340: "It really hurt my career, or my public persona," he said. “It was based on an untruth…If I say it didn’t happen, I’m trusting that peo
pl e will believe me.”
ellauri147.html on line 347:
ploads/2019/11/27145342/phil-collins-FB.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 350: Although he was anxious about introducing Orianne to his daughter, all was well after Collins told six-year-old Lily that Orianne looked just like Princess Jasmine from Disney’s Aladdin. The cou
pl e tied the knot in 1999, but it also didn’t stand the test of time…
ellauri147.html on line 353:
ploads/2019/11/27150204/phil-collins-151.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 357: After his divorce to Orianne, and struggling to
pl ay the drums for health reasons, Phil Collins developed a drinking problem, which spiraled out of control. According to him, he required a “medically enforced drying-out process.” Kuivatelakalle niinkuin isä Mefodi. However, his low self-esteem also got in the way of seeing things clearly. No wonder. Paul McCartney´s net worth is 1.2 gigadollars! He could buy Phil 5 times over!
ellauri147.html on line 361:
ploads/2019/11/27145326/phil-collins-17.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 372:
ploads/2019/11/27145328/phil-collins-18.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 377:
ploads/2019/11/27145739/phil-collins-21.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri147.html on line 440: In 2012, she was
pl aced at number 4 in Peo
pl e’s Most Beautiful List.
ellauri147.html on line 454: She co-starred as Marla Mabrey, a devout Baptist beauty queen living in a beautiful home with her strict mother Lucy, in the 2016 American romantic comedy-drama film, Rules Don’t Ap
pl y. Her performance in the movie got her nominated for the 2017 Golden Globe Award in the “Best Actress in a Motion Picture – Comedy or Musical” category.
ellauri147.html on line 564: - stimmt zu mit seinem eponymischen zeitdiagnostischem Beitrag. Der Martin ist ein Narzissismussachkenner. Geboren am 9.5.1948 in Völklingen/Saar, mit drei Geschwistern in einer protestantischen Pfarrersfamilie aufgewachsen. Nach Schule, Abitur und Germanistik/Anglistik-Studium ein Jahr Aufenthalt in den USA (1968). Seit 1969 in Frankfurt/Main lebend; Studium der Psychologie an der Johann Wolfgang Goethe-Universität, Frankfurt/Main, Di
pl om 1976. Politisch aktiv in der Studentenbewegung. Verheiratet seit 1986, zwei Söhne (geb. 1979, 1982).
ellauri147.html on line 606: Winnicott has also been accused of identifying himself in his theoretical stance with an idealised mother, in the tradition of mother (Madonna) and child. Related is his down
pl aying of the importance of the erotic in his work, as well as the Wordsworthian Romanticism of his cult of childhood
pl ay (exaggerated still further in some of his followers).
ellauri147.html on line 608: Winnicott's theoretical slipperiness has been linked to his efforts to unclify Kleinian views. Yet whereas from a Kleinian standpoint, his repudiation of the concepts of envy and the death wish were a resistant retreat from the harsh realities he had found in infant life, he too has been accused of being too close to his mother, and of sharing in Klein's regressive shift of focus away from the Oedipus com
pl ex to the pre-oedipal.
ellauri147.html on line 640:
ellauri147.html on line 656: Primaarisen narsismin monadologinen käsitys näkyy Freudin pseudopodin (eli pseudojalan) lähettävän proto
pl asmatian metaforassa; se on ameeban malli. Rajatun aiheen oletetaan olevan aiheen mukaan, riippuen egosta, eriyttämättömästä Ich-Es-tilasta tai itsestä, joka on alun perin libidossa. (Tokko se izekään täysin ymmärsi tätä.) Osa tästä käyttöenergiasta käytetään nyt kohdeiden ammatteihin ja myös vedetään pois, toinen osa jää egoon. Tässä versiossa narsismi rinnastetaan itserakkauteen eli "itse-edustuksen libidiiniseen miehitykseen", kuten Hartmann myöhemmin "selvensi". Todellisuus on periaatteessa vihamielinen, kohde on enimän näkemätön.
ellauri147.html on line 657:
ellauri147.html on line 666: Diese beiden Konzeptionen des primären Narzissmus als Varianten eines ontogenetischen Ausgangszustands werden von Freud – unausgesprochen und zum Teil miteinander verschachtelt – nebeneinander verwendet, ohne dass er sich mit ihrer Widersprüchlichkeit ex
pl izit auseinandersetzt. Die unaufgelöste Ambivalenz in dieser Frage zeigt sich etwa beim entwicklungspsychologischen Durcheinander im zeitlichen Verhältnis von Autismus, Narzissmus und Objektbeziehung – was war zuerst? Eigentlich handelt es sich um eine zirkuläre Konstruktion, bei der eines aus dem anderen hervorgeht. Und es setzt sich bei der Bestimmung der Entwicklungsformen des Narzissmus fort. Ich will das nur an widersprüchlichen Auffasssungen anreisse, die Freud zum „Erbe“ des primären Narzissmus in der seelischen Struktur entwickelt, das bekanntlich aus dem Selbstgefühl, dem sekundären Narzissmus, dem Ich-Ideal und einigen anderen Resten besteht:-->
ellauri147.html on line 668: Varhaisen narsistisen itsetunnon tutkiminen rajojen purkamisesta ympäristöön nähden kohtaa "oidisynkraattisen puolustuksen" odisynkraattisesta puolustuksesta "oidipal-ajattelija" Freudille, joka vain vastahakoisesti myöntää tällaisen "valtameren tunteen" olemassaolon jopa egon kehityksen kypsemmissä vaiheissa. Ristiriitainen kysymys vastataan siihen, onko "egon narsismi" luonteeltaan ensisijainen vai toissijainen ja siten primaarisen ja toissijaisen narsismin suhteen määrittämisessä. Lopuksi käsitteellinen ambivalenssi näkyy käsitteellisessä siirtymisessä ego-ihanteesta, joka alun perin määriteltiin (täydellisyyden sisällöllä) rakenteelliseksi "ensisijaisen narsismin perinnöksi", supermiehelle, joka on osoitettu "Oidipus-kom
pl eksin perijäksi" paljon myöhempään kehitysvaiheeseen.
ellauri147.html on line 669:
ellauri147.html on line 697:
ellauri171.html on line 280:
ploads/2018/02/Maria-Magdalena-Frontpage.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri171.html on line 281:
ploads/2019/07/maria-magdalena.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri171.html on line 391: What’s the story really about? At the time the story of Cain and Abel developed, there was constant friction between farmers and herdsmen, both of them fighting for the limited resources of the land. Cain kills Abel. A herd of goats in a stony, barren landscape The herdsmen were angry when the farmers took over the best land for their crops the farmers were angry when the flocks tram
pl ed their crops.This friction leads to violence in which peo
pl e get killed. Notice that the story was developed by the herdsmen, the keepers of flocks. This ex
pl ains why Abel, the herdsman, is portrayed as the injured party. Lucky Luke-tarinassa
Piikkilankoja preerialla skooparit repi pelihousunsa kun jyväjemmarit pystyttivät piikkilankoja preerialle. Sillä kertaa oli maajussit hyvixiä. Nyt on keskusta taas paha.
ellauri171.html on line 393:
ploads/2021/10/cain-et-abel-1024x630.jpg" />
ellauri171.html on line 398: The story continues the Bible’s ex
pl oration of the origin of evil in a world created by a God who is all goodness. (Remember the old word game: write down ‘God’ and ‘Devil’; then put an extra ‘o’ in the middle of ‘God’ and take the ‘d’ off ‘devil’; what do you have?) Another one: write the words backwards, what do you get? Dog lived. Okay never mind let's move on.
ellauri171.html on line 403: The political stability of Israel was often upset by peo
pl e called ‘prophets’. These were social critics who spoke bluntly about injustice when they saw it. Rather like the Alt-Right TV evangelists.
ellauri171.html on line 409: It was a dangerous thing to do. He might have got away with it with Antipas, who was indolent and indecisive, but Herodias was another matter. She engineered a situation that led to John’s death, silencing him forever. Did Herodias do it alone? Probably not. It is more likely that all three (Antipas, Herodias and Salome)
pl anned the charade beforehand, to provide an excuse for getting rid of John and silencing him. In any case John, already in prison, was quickly beheaded. Another political problem was solved. Were it not for the fact that the gospels recorded this deed, John’s name and the horror of his death would have been lost forever.
ellauri171.html on line 430: This
pl an was thwarted by the Hebrew midwives, including Shiprah and Puah. So Pharaoh ordered instead that every newborn Israelite boy was to be hurled into the Nile waters and left to drown. This solution worked. Except for Moses.
ellauri171.html on line 433: Then Pharaoh commanded all his peo
pl e, “Every son that is born to the Hebrews you shall cast into the Nile, but you shall let every daughter live.” Exodus 1:15-22
ellauri171.html on line 443: The siege went on for months, and peo
pl e were dying of hunger and thirst.
ellauri171.html on line 444: This was when Judith went into action. She went into the enemy camp and offered Holofernes information that would help him defeat her own peo
pl e.
ellauri171.html on line 445: He may or may not have believed her, but her beauty made her a sexual fly-trap, and he allowed her to stay. In the ensuring battle of tits, Judith managed to outwit her prey. While he was drunk and had emptied his bollocks into her, she pulled his sword out of its scabbard, prayed to God for strength, hacked Holofernes’ head off, then escaped back to her peo
pl e.
ellauri171.html on line 447: When the murder was discovered the enemy soldiers fled in panic, so Judith was proclaimed the savior of her peo
pl e.
ellauri171.html on line 451: Next she rolled his body off the bed and pulled down the canopy from the posts. Soon afterward she went out and gave Holofernes’ head to her maid, who
pl aced it in her food bag.’ Judith 13:6-10
ellauri171.html on line 453:
ploads/2016/03/Judith_Caravaggio.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri171.html on line 463: Jehu was merciless, and Jezebel died horribly. She was first thrown from the window of her palace, then tram
pl ed to death by chariot horses driven over her still-living body.
ellauri171.html on line 467: He looked up to the window and said “Who is on my side? Who?” Two or three eunuchs looked out at him. He said “Throw her down.” So they threw her down; some of her blood spattered on the wall and on the horses, which tram
pl ed on her. Then he went in to dinner. …..
ellauri171.html on line 497:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e7/Absalom_Albert_Weisgerber.jpg/220px-Absalom_Albert_Weisgerber.jpg" />
ellauri171.html on line 504: The young girl Dinah is seized and raped by Shechem. Shechem tries to atone. He falls in love with Dinah and offers to marry her. He also offers compensation to her family. Jacob accepts the young man’s attempt at reconciliation, but his sons do not. They
pl an to murder Shechem and all the men of the city. Dinah’s brothers massacre the men of the city, including Shechem, and enslave the women and children. Dinah’s fate is unknown.
ellauri171.html on line 512: She seems to have been confident enough of her safety to move freely among the the Canaanite women of the region -relations with Canaanites were friendly, and the women of both peo
pl es considered themselves to be safe.
ellauri171.html on line 515: What happened to Dinah? "ithout giving any details of where she was or how it happened, the Bible sim
pl y says that Shechem, the son of the local ruler, took hold of her and and had sexual intercourse with her by force. There was seeing, desiring and taking just as there was with the forbidden fruit in the Garden of Eden, where the pattern for sin had begun, tai vaikka jossain jäzkibaarissa.
ellauri171.html on line 521: But Shechem falls passionately in love post coitum! So not at all what happened with Amnon. Dinah must have been a better lay. Now love com
pl icates what would otherwise be the sim
pl e story of a violent crime. Shechem declared that he has fallen passionately in love with Dinah. He told her this, and he told anyone who would listen to him. He loved her tenderly – the words of the story im
pl y longing, yearning, tenderness, not the usual feelings of a rapist.
ellauri171.html on line 526: Jacob is told that his daughter has been defiled. The word used to describe the action im
pl ies someone who is impure because they have a skin disease, or have touched something dead and are ritually unclean. It does not mean sinful, but it does mean exclusion from the tribe until cleanness is restored.
ellauri171.html on line 536: Hamor tries to
pl acate them by telling them his son loves Dinah, and wants to marry her. Their relationship will be based on loyalty and trust, he im
pl ies. He speaks respectfully, and carefully includes the brothers in his discussion, making them a generous offer:
ellauri171.html on line 540: an invitation to Jacob’s family to settle permanently in the region, acquire property and intermarry with his own peo
pl e
ellauri171.html on line 563: Shechem agrees. He is the eldest son of his family, next in line to rule the city of Shechem, so all the men the city agree to be circumcised. He does not have to ex
pl ain the reason for this uncomfortable operation: everyone knows what has happened.
ellauri171.html on line 581: Now the other brothers of Dinah join in,
pl undering the city. They steal the flocks and herds, donkey, and whatever produce they can carry.
ellauri171.html on line 589: His anger is stoked not by any ethical consideration, but by the fear that they have become pariahs who will be hunted down by allies of the city they have attacked. He rebukes his sons for backing out of the agreement they had with the peo
pl e of the city – but hasn’t he himself used du
pl icity all his life to get what he wants? He does not like it when his sons do the same.
ellauri171.html on line 591: The brothers respond: should they have let their sister be treated like a whore? A whore receives financial advantage for sex, and they reproach Jacob for suggesting that the honour of the family can be restored by favours from the peo
pl e of Shechem. They call Dinah ‘our sister’ rather than ‘your daughter’ – a reproach to their father.
ellauri171.html on line 596:
ploads/2009/07/Rape-of-dinah.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri171.html on line 625: Why is this story important at all for peo
pl e without foreskins? In verse 1 we are told that a Levite had taken a concubine, a second class wife, for himself.
ellauri171.html on line 631: But his concubine
pl ayed the harlot against him, and she went away from him to her father’s house in Bethlehem in Judah, and was there for a period of four months. Judges 19:2 (NASB)
ellauri171.html on line 633: We are told that the concubine became a prostitute. Since we are told that she went to her father’s house, it may be that she and the Levite had an argument about her adultery before she fled. Verses 1 and 2 im
pl y they were not happy together. Now before we find fault with the Levite and accuse him of using her as a mistress, read the next two verses.
ellauri171.html on line 638: Now we learn that the Levite and the concubine are husband and wife because the Levite is described as “her husband,” and the woman’s father is the Levite’s “father-in-law.” We also learn that the Levite travelled to Bethlehem to speak kindly to her and return home together. Because we are told that he
pl anned to “speak tenderly to her,” this once again suggests that they may have argued after she
pl ayed the prostitute, and as a result she left.
ellauri171.html on line 642: Judges 19:15-26 describes what happened the night the cou
pl e stayed in Gibeah, a city of the Benjamites. When they entered the open square of the city an old man invited them to his home (Judges 19:16-21). While the old man and the Levite and his concubine were having dinner, we are told some “worthless fellows” surrounded the house and pounded on the door. Verses 22-24 describe the discussion that occurred with these “worthless fellows.”
ellauri171.html on line 645: While they were celebrating, behold, the men of the city, certain worthless fellows, surrounded the house, pounding the door; and they spoke to the owner of the house, the old man, saying, “Bring out the man who came into your house that we may have relations with him.” Then the man, the owner of the house, went out to them and said to them, “No, my fellows,
pl ease do not act so wickedly; since this man has come into my house, do not commit this act of folly. “ Here is my virgin daughter and his concubine. Please let me bring them out that you may ravish them and do to them whatever you wish. But do not commit such an act of folly against this man.” Judges 19:22-24 (NASB)
ellauri171.html on line 659: . . . Then he
pl aced her on the donkey; and the man arose and went to his home. When he entered his house, he took a knife and laid hold of his concubine and cut her in twelve pieces, limb by limb, and sent her throughout the territory of Israel. All who saw it said, “Nothing like this has ever happened or been seen from the day when the sons of Israel came up from the land of Egypt to this day. Consider it, take counsel and speak up!” Judges 19:28b-30 (NASB)
ellauri171.html on line 664: Eleven tribes (called Israel in the account) reacted by demanding that the tribe of Benjamin give the guilty men, who caused the death of the concubine, to be released. But the peo
pl e of Benjamin protected the guilty men and refused to turn them over for justice (Judges 20:12–14).
ellauri171.html on line 671: Judges 21:1-7, 13-18 tells us that the Israelites began to feel sorry of the remaining six hundred men from the tribe of Benjamin. Therefore, a
pl an was created to allow the Benjamite men to abduct one wife from among the virgin daughters of Shiloh of their choosing (Judges 21:20-24) at the feast of the Lord in Shiloh. So when the virgins came out and danced, the men of Benjamin were allowed to “catch his wife from among the daughters of Shiloh” (Judges 21:21).
ellauri171.html on line 673:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri171.html on line 681: Our second lesson is that our sins affect others and potentially lead others to sin. The first sin in this account occurred in the home of the Levite and concubine. The fact that the Levite
pl anned to “speak tenderly to her” (Judges 19:3) in order to win her back, seems to im
pl y that they had quarreled. The most obvious sin is that she committed adultery when she became a prostitute. The initial sin cascaded into the horrific evils in Gibeah and subsequently to the 400 virgins who were taken alive in Jabesh-gilead to be given as wives to the remaining men of Benjamin. Judges 21:25 says, “. . . everyone did what was right in his own eyes.”
ellauri171.html on line 687: A fifth lesson is that the account describes what happens when men and women abandon God. Sex and other immoral behavior re
pl ace God! The entire story is an exam
pl e of unrestrained animal lust and human depravity. Total disregard for life occurs. What one desires is all that is important. As Proverbs 30:15 says, “The leech has two daughters, “Give,” “Give” . . . ” Women are less important than men. Men abuse men. Unloving men abusively rule over women. Sex trumps everything else. Why? Judges 21:25 says, “. . . everyone did what was right in his own eyes.”
ellauri171.html on line 689: The sixth lesson is that the homosexuals demonstrated that to them homosexual sexual activity is more desirable than heterosexual activity. However, heterosexual behavior is acceptable if that is all that is available to them. Romans 1:23-24, 26 and 28 teach that when peo
pl e are given over to homosexual activity, it is a sign that they have rejected God. Homosexual activity is a more serious sin among sins, despite the claims of some. See the study, “Are some sins worse than other sins? – Are all sins equal?” Also notice that Judges 19:22 refers to the men of Gibeah as “worthless fellows.”
ellauri171.html on line 693: Another lesson is that the Levite was supposedly a godly man and priest. The account does not tell us what ultimately happened to him, but Judges 20:4-5 seems to im
pl y that he lied about his actions in order to save himself. Scripture records what appears to be deception. It is not enough for someone to claim to a godly person. It appears that Scripture records he was not fit for the priesthood. Being a pastor or a priest is not a “job” or “vocation.” Some have said that character does not matter. It is what one accom
pl ishes. But Scripture repeatedly demonstrates that God uses righteous ministers! This man’s behavior demonstrated he was not qualified to be a priest.
ellauri171.html on line 707: He came to a camp site whose peo
pl e, he thought, would be friendly to him.
ellauri171.html on line 715: she struck Sisera a blow, she crushed his head, she shattered and pierced his tem
pl e.
ellauri171.html on line 737:
ploads/2018/11/Ambrosiana-Giuseppe-Vermiglio-Giaele-e-Sisara.jpg" width="50%"/>
ellauri171.html on line 743: But Ehud had a
pl an. As he handed the booty over, he whispered to the king that he has secret information that he could only divulge in private. The king, intrigued, invited Ehud into a private room upstairs. It was a tiny room with a commode toilet for the use of the king and his family.
ellauri171.html on line 744: Once inside the room with the door firmly closed, Ehud drew out a sword he has strapped to his inside thigh and
pl unged it into the king’s very fat body.
ellauri171.html on line 747: He was left-handed. The guards searched for a weapon on his left thigh where a right-handed person would have hidden it. They missed the knife inside his right thigh! Clever! Bible Murders: Ehud murders Eglon. Man's body of about the same proportions as Eglon's. The Bible gives a graphic description of the king’s body. It was so fat that the blade went deep into his belly: it
pl unged so far in that the hilt went in as well, and the skin closed over it.
ellauri171.html on line 760: There is something particularly cruel about this slaughter of the innocents. It was done by peo
pl e the boys had grown to trust, but who now hunted them down and killed them violently.
ellauri171.html on line 761: Their dead bodies, it seems, were too cumbersome to tranport. Instead, the boy’s heads were hacked off, collected in baskets, and dis
pl ayed for the gawking crowd the the city gate.
ellauri171.html on line 775: The lesson: God always wins. That's a pretty sim
pl istic way of saying it, but it's true nonetheless. Even when peo
pl e like Athaliah try to stomp out an entire family and put an end to God's
pl an for redemption, when peo
pl e like the priests of Baal lead others to worship idols instead of the true God, God will always triumph in the end. The negative forces of our culture make us wonder where we're headed as a peo
pl e. Many of our leaders show little integrity or morality, and dishonesty is overlooked in the work
pl ace. Kindness is often the exception rather than the rule. But don't despair. This is not a battle God
pl ans to lose. In the end, he will prevail! You just wight Enry Jiggins!
ellauri171.html on line 787: Many Christians are born into poverty, having no choice in the matter. For exam
pl e, faithful believers who love God and do all His commandments live in the poorer countries of the world. In fact, God has called many poor into His church. James the apostle asked, “Has God not chosen the poor of this world to be rich in faith and heirs of the kingdom which He promised to those who love Him?” (James 2:5).
ellauri171.html on line 793: Though Christ never taught it was wrong to have wealth, He did warn about the snare of riches. For exam
pl e, there was a rich young man who came to Him during His ministry. He asked Jesus what He must do to inherit eternal life. Jesus told Him, “sell what you have and give to the poor, and you will have treasure in heaven; and come, follow Me” (Matthew 19:21). As the episode unfolds, the rich young man could not bring himself to do this. He “went away sorrowful, but anyway he had great possessions” (Matthew 19:22).
ellauri171.html on line 795: At this point, Jesus said to His disci
pl es, “it is hard for a rich man to enter the kingdom of heaven” (Matthew 19:23). Hard but not impossible. A camel can be diluted in acid and injected thru a needle. Anyway it was just the name of a gate in Jerusalem. This is because the care of riches in this life can be a snare for a Christian. A Christian’s heart cannot be set on riches and cares of this world above the Kingdom of God. In another exam
pl e, the parable of the sower, Jesus warned that some who receive the word of God will allow their spiritual growth to be choked off by “the cares of this world and the deceitfulness of riches” (Matthew 13:22). These things show us that being poor can help a Christian not to be ensnared by such things. No cause to com
pl ain then.
ellauri171.html on line 797: Though Christians may be poor in this world, it is God’s will to "eventually" eliminate poverty. The Bible speaks in much detail of a coming time of peace and prosperity on earth when poverty will be wiped out. It is called the millennium. God the Father has a
pl an to send His Son back to earth in great power and glory. “He has appointed a day on which He will judge the world in righteousness by the Man whom He has ordained” (Acts 17:31).
ellauri171.html on line 799: Until that day, God is continually searching the hearts of His peo
pl e to know what is in them. He allows some Christians to be poor, even while other believers have wealth. What a Christian does in each circumstance is important to God. In the book of Revelation, the glorified Jesus Christ said to one of His churches, "I know your… poverty, but you are rich” (Revelation 2:9). That is, these Christians were poor in the wealth of this world, but were rich in faith toward God.
ellauri171.html on line 832: Attar, god of the morning star ("son of the morning") who tried to take the
pl ace of the dead Baal and failed. Male counterpart of Athtart.
ellauri171.html on line 846: Baalshamin also called Baal Shamem and Baal Shamaim, supreme sky god of Palmyra, Syria whose tem
pl e was destroyed on August 23, 2015 by ISIL. His attributes were the eagle and the lightning bolt. Part of trinity of deities along with Aglibol and Malakbel.
ellauri171.html on line 850: Bel, or Bol, was the chief god of Palmyra, Syria whose tem
pl e was destroyed on August 30, 2015 by ISIL.
ellauri171.html on line 898: Resheph, god of
pl ague and of healing.
ellauri171.html on line 908: Sydyk, the god of righteousness or justice, sometimes twinned with Misor, and linked to the
pl anet Jupiter
ellauri171.html on line 927: The palace economy of Mycenaean Greece, the Aegean region and Anatolia that characterized the Late Bronze Age disintegrated, transforming into the small isolated village cultures of the Greek Dark Ages, which lasted from around 1100 BCE to the beginning of the Archaic age around 750 BCE. The Hittite Empire of Anatolia and the Levant collapsed, while states such as the Middle Assyrian Empire in Mesopotamia and the New Kingdom of Egypt survived but were considerably weakened. Conversely, some peo
pl es such as the Phoenicians enjoyed increased autonomy and power with the waning military presence of Egypt and Assyria in the Levant.
ellauri171.html on line 929: Competing and even mutually incompatible theories for the ultimate cause of the Late Bronze Age collapse have been made since the 19th century. These include volcanic eruptions, droughts, invasions by the Sea Peo
pl es or migrations of Dorians, economic disruptions due to the rising use of ironworking, and changes in military technology and methods of war that saw the decline of chariot warfare. Following the collapse, gradual changes in metallurgic technology led to the subsequent Iron Age across Eurasia and Africa during the 1st millennium BCE.
ellauri171.html on line 931: The last Bronze Age king of Ugarit, Ammurapi (circa 1215 to 1180 BC), was a contemporary of the last known Hittite king, Suppiluliuma II. Ammurapi oli amoriitti kuten esi-isänsä Hammurabi (1792 BC to c. 1750), se Babylonian silmä silmästä, hammas hampaasta kaveri. The exact dates of his reign are unknown. However, a letter by the king is preserved, in which Ammurapi stresses the seriousness of the crisis faced by many Near Eastern states due to attacks (but by whom?). Ammurapi
pl eads for assistance from the king of Alashiya, highlighting the desperate situation Ugarit faced:
ellauri171.html on line 937: As for the matter concerning those enemies: peo
pl e from your country and your own ships did this! And peo
pl e from your country committed these transgression(s)...I am writing to inform you and protect you. Be aware!
ellauri171.html on line 944: The Sea Peo
pl es remain unidentified in the eyes of most modern scholars, and hypotheses regarding the origin of the various groups are the source of much speculation. Filistealaiset oli kenties peräisin Aigeiasta, siis länkkäreitä?! Kappas vain!
ellauri171.html on line 946: After its destruction in the early 12th century BC Ugarit's location was forgotten until 1928 when a peasant accidentally opened an old tomb while
pl oughing a field.
ellauri171.html on line 954: In Canaanite mythology there were twin mountains Targhizizi and Tharumagi which hold the firmament up above the earth-circling ocean, thereby bounding the earth. W. F. Albright, for exam
pl e, says that El Shaddai is a derivation of a Semitic stem that appears in the Akkadian shadû ("mountain") and shaddā'û or shaddû'a ("mountain-dweller"), one of the names of Amurru. Philo of Byblos states that Atlas was one of the Elohim, which would clearly fit into the story of El Shaddai as "God of the Mountain(s)". Harriet Lutzky has presented evidence that Shaddai was an attribute of a Semitic goddess, linking the epithet with Hebrew šad "breast" as "the one of the Breast". The idea of two mountains being associated here as the breasts of the Earth, fits into the Canaanite mythology quite well. The ideas of pairs of mountains seem to be quite common in Canaanite mythology (similar to Horeb and Sinai in the Bible). The late period of this cosmology makes it difficult to tell what influences (Roman, Greek, or Hebrew) may have informed Philo's writings.
ellauri171.html on line 958: Archaeological investigations at the site of Tell es-Safi have found the remains of donkeys, as well as some sheep and goats in Early Bronze Age layers, dating to 4,900 years ago which were imported from Egypt in order to be sacrificed. One of the sacrificial animals, a com
pl ete donkey, was found beneath the foundations of a building, leading to speculation this was a 'foundation deposit'
pl aced before the building of a residential house. Me syötiin Kiinan teevuorilla kerran aasikeittoa. Ei se pahaa ollut.
ellauri171.html on line 960: It is considered virtually impossible to reconstruct a clear picture of Canaanite religious practices. Although child sacrifice was known to surrounding peo
pl es, there is no reference to it in ancient Phoenician or Classical texts. The biblical representation of Canaanite religion is always negative.
ellauri171.html on line 964: Canaanite deities such as Baal were represented by figures which were
pl aced in shrines, often on hilltops, or 'high
pl aces' surrounded by groves of trees, such as is condemned in the Hebrew Bible, in Hosea (v 13a) which would probably hold the Asherah pole, and standing stones or pillars.
ellauri171.html on line 976: Jezebel’s marriage to Ahab was a political alliance. The union provided both peo
pl es with military protection from powerful enemies as well as valuable trade routes: Israel gained access to the Phoenician ports; Phoenicia gained passage through Israel’s central hill country to Transjordan and especially to the King’s Highway, the heavily traveled inland route connecting the Gulf of Aqaba in the south with Damascus in the north. But although the marriage is sound foreign policy, it is intolerable to the Deuteronomist because of Jezebel’s competing gods.
ellauri171.html on line 979: What the fuck so she stuck to her own peo
pl e's gods, that was her biggest sin. Besides being smarter than her rather goofy hubby Ahab.
ellauri171.html on line 983: The extent of Jezebel’s power is evidenced by the necessity for Jehu, the founder of the next royal dynasty in Israel, to murder her before his rule can be established (2 Kings 9:30–37)—
pl us her whole extended family. Tollasta karhutouhua. The biblical text insists that she is evil through and through.
ellauri171.html on line 992: The next time we hear of Jezebel is during the
pl oy to obtain Naboth’s vineyard for her husband, who is unable to secure the transaction. She sends letters, with the stamp of the king, to the elders in Naboth’s town, commanding them to lie against Naboth, and then stone him. The elders do so, and after Naboth’s death, the vineyard is claimed for Ahab. Few bible commentators acknowledge the bizarre betrayal of Naboth by his neighbors. If, as is suggested, Naboth’s neighbors had known him since birth and patronized him, how could they turn so quickly? Some scholars argue that this incident highlights Jezebel’s keen understanding of Israelite men. It is perhaps, also, one of the impetus for her modern connotation as manipulator-supreme.
ellauri171.html on line 994: The final time we hear of Jezebel (an entire chapter later) is just before her demise. Having just killed the sitting king and son of Jezebel, Jehu enters town to do the same to her. As she sees Jehu, Jezebel stands at the window, issues one last zinger insult, and then puts on makeup. Jehu commands the eunuchs to throw her down, they do so, and Jezebel is tram
pl ed. The donning of makeup is the final impetus for her conception as a whore. The most popular interpretation is that Jezebel puts on makeup in effort to seduce Jehu, but this interpretation is not bolstered by the text. Jezebel is the sitting Queen, presumably old in age by now, and has performed in a political function her entire life. She very likely understands that she is about to die and even issues one last insult as Jehu approaches. A more compassionate reading of the text would indicate that Jezebel, for lack of a better term, “goes out with a bang.” Except Jehu hardly banged her If she was an old hag by then.
ellauri171.html on line 995: As she regally awaits Jehu in the Jezreel palace, some palace officials squeeze her through the lattice window, most likely piece by piece. By the time Jehu has finished eating, he orders that she be buried “for she is a king’s daughter” (2 Kings 9:34), but the dogs sup
pl ied by Elijah's goons have already eaten most of her carcass—in keeping with Elijah’s prophecy.
ellauri171.html on line 997: It is worth noting that nowhere in the text is Jezebel characterized as promiscuous or seductive. The text makes no mention of her physical appearance. Unlike characters such as Rachel, Joseph, and Rebekah, whom the Bible ex
pl icitly labels as aesthetically appealing, there is no such indication for Jezebel. In fact, if anything, the text indicates that Jezebel is an all-too-loyal wife —even capable of murder. She is not an admirable character by any means, however, it is critical to highlight that nothing about her modern connotation is exem
pl ified in text.
ellauri171.html on line 1008: The Zohar ex
pl ains that although Elijah was a prophet of Gad, it is the practice of the righteous to avoid situations that require miraculous divine intervention unless absolutely necessary. Because Jezebel had threatened to harm him, Elijah escaped quickly to save Gad the trouble of a supernatural rescue mission. Gad was a little out of breath after the Carmel incident.
ellauri171.html on line 1033: The meaning of Izebel is “My God is a vow”. Keep in mind that many names may have different meanings in other countries and languages, so be careful that the name that you choose doesn’t mean something bad or un
pl easant. The history and meaning of the name Izebel is fascinating, learn more about it. This name is not popular in the US, according to Social Security Administration, as there are no popularity data for the name.
ellauri171.html on line 1042: Wow there are two ladies in the good book called Tamar, Number 1 gets fucked by his father in law in bronze age (
1898 BC ). Number 2 gets raped by his brother shortly before the first tem
pl e (
990 BC ). Prime material for soap operas and home pornography.
ellauri171.html on line 1049:
Storyline: Jacob's psychopath son Judah believes that his daughter-in-law Tamara 1 has killed two of his sons, and subjugates her so that she is unable to remarry. However, she ultimately tricks Judah into fucking her pregnant himself and therefore secures her
pl ace in the family. She gives Judah two more sons. Her story illustrates her loyalty and her willingness to be assertive and unconventional.
ellauri171.html on line 1051: Judah, who has bought her for his firstborn son, Er, loses it, er, I mean loses Er. When he, er, I mean Er dies, Judah gives Tamar to his second son, Onan, who is to act as levir, a surrogate for his dead brother who would beget a son to continue Er’s lineage. (Onan's sin you must be familiar with first hand!) In this way, Tamar too would be assured a
pl ace in the family. Onan, however, would make a considerable economic sacrifice. According to inheritance customs, the estate of Judah, who had three sons, would be divided into four equal parts, with the eldest son acquiring one half and the others one fourth each. A child engendered for Er would inherit at least one fourth and possibly one half (as the son of the firstborn). If Er remained childless, then Judah’s estate would be divided into three, with the eldest, most probably Onan, inheriting two thirds. Onan opts to preserve his financial advantage and does coitus interruptus with Tamar, spilling his semen on the ground. For this, God punishes Onan with death, as God had previously punished Er for doing something equally wicked (unfortunately we are not told what, maybe sodomy in the flock).
ellauri171.html on line 1055: Ostensibly, Tamar is only waiting for Shelah to grow up and mate with her. But after time passes, she realizes that Judah is not going to effect that union. She therefore devises a
pl an to secure her own future by tricking her father-in-law into having sex with her. She is not
pl anning incest. A father-in-law may not sleep with his daughter-in-law (Lev 18:15), just as a brother-in-law may not sleep with his sister-in-law (Lev 18:16), but in-law incest rules are suspended for the purpose of the levirate. The levir is, after all, only a surrogate for the dead husband. What the fuck. Well, it takes one to know one.
ellauri171.html on line 1057: Tamar’s
pl an is as sim
pl e as it is clever: she covers herself with a veil so that Judah won’t recognize her, and then she sits in the roadway at the “entrance to Enaim” (Hebrew petah enayim; literally, “eye-opener”). She has chosen her spot well. Judah will pass as he comes back happy and horny (and maybe tipsy) from a sheep-shearing festival. The veil is not the mark of a prostitute (haha); rather, it sim
pl y will prevent Judah from seeing Tamar’s face, and women sitting by the roadway are apparently fair game. So, Judah propositions her, offering to give her a kid (well he did) for her services and giving her his pet seal and staff id (the ancient equivalent of a credit card) in
pl edge.
ellauri171.html on line 1059: Judah, a man of honor (buahahaha) tries to pay. His friend Hirah goes looking for her, asking around for the kedeshah in the road (Gen 38:21.). The NRSV translates this as “tem
pl e prostitute,” but a kedeshah was not a sacred prostitute; she was a public woman, who might be found along the roadway (as virgins and married women should not be). She could engage in sex, but might also be sought out for lactation, midwifery, and other female concerns. By looking for a kedeshah, Hirah can look for a public woman without revealing Judah’s private life. The woman, of course, is nowhere to be found. Judah, mindful of his public image, calls off the search rather than became a laughingstock. BRUAAHAHAHA!
ellauri171.html on line 1061: But there is a greater threat to his honor (aw fuck, stop, you're killing us). Rumor relates that Tamar is pregnant and has obviously been faithless to her obligation to Judah to remain chaste. Judah, as the head of the family, acts swiftly to restore his honor, commanding that she be burnt to death. But Tamar has anticipated this danger. She sends his identifying
pl edge to him, urging him to recognize that its owner is the father. Realizing what has happened, Judah publicly announces Tamar’s innocence. His cryptic phrase, zadekah mimmeni, is often translated “she is more in the right than I” (Gen 38:26), a recognition not only of her innocence, but also of his wrongdoing in not freeing her or performing the levirate. Another possible translation is “she is innocent—it [the child] is from me.” Judah has now performed the levirate (despite himself) and never cohabits with Tamar again. Once she is pregnant, future sex with a late son’s wife would be incestuous.
ellauri171.html on line 1063: Tamar’s
pl ace in the family and Judah’s posterity are secured. She gives birth to twins, Perez and Zerah (Gen 38:29–30; 1 Chr 2:4), thus restoring two sons to Judah, who has lost two. Their birth is reminiscent of the birth of Rebekah’s twin sons, at which Jacob came out holding Esau’s heel (Gen 25:24–26). Perez does him one better. The midwife marks Zerah’s hand with a scarlet cord when it emerges from the womb first, but Perez (whose name means “barrier-breach”) edges his way through. Cuts the queue. From his line would come David. Not surprising.
ellauri171.html on line 1065: Tamar was assertive of her rights and subversive of convention. She was also dee
pl y loyal to Judah’s family. These qualities also show up in Ruth, who appears later in the lineage of Perez and preserves Boaz’s part of that line. The blessing at Ruth’s wedding underscores the similarity in its hope that Boaz’s house “be like the house of Perez, whom Tamar bore to Judah” (Ruth 4:12). Tamar’s (and Ruth’s) traits of assertiveness in action, willingness to be unconventional, and deep loyalty to family are the very qualities that distinguish their descendant, King David.
ellauri171.html on line 1067:
Storyline : Tamara is a girl who didn't quite fit in. Tamara is constantly picked on and when a cou
pl e of Judah's sons
pl ay a joke on Tamara, it leads to their death. The sugardaddy tries to make it so that Tamara ran away. But all is not lost yet. Tamara returns as a sexy seductress and
pl ans her revenge. (due to witchcraft). Well like they say: Karma's a bitch. —Anonymous
ellauri171.html on line 1072: A really dumb, derivative rip-off, slovenly constructed and
pl ayed with the sort of ludicrous earnestness that just misses being bad enough to qualify as high camp.
ellauri171.html on line 1082: The story has dubious
pl easures.
ellauri171.html on line 1084: This old testament death-feast was initially slated to debut in Midrash. Watching it, you'll wonder why the distributor changed its
pl ans.
ellauri171.html on line 1095:
Judah scents no foul pl ay. Nothing out of the ordinary.
ellauri171.html on line 1104: Tamar probably had a marriage arranged for her when she was still a child – this was the usual procedure for royal princesses. But things did not go to
pl an.
ellauri171.html on line 1105: When Tamar reached puberty her half-brother Amnon, David’s eldest son, developed an unnatural obsession with his young half-sister. He watched her, he waited in
pl aces where she passed, he could not get enough of her presence, and above all he wanted to possess her.
ellauri171.html on line 1115: But Amnon was not used to being refused something he wanted. He must have discussed his obsession with a friend of his, a clever cousin called Jonadab, because this young man came up with a
pl an. They would lure Tamar into Amnon’s room on the pretext that her half-brother was ill, and once they were alone there Amnon could have what he wanted. Bedrooms in ancient mansions were designed to receive guests/visitors.
ellauri171.html on line 1123: She came to Amnon’s quarters and prepared a kind of boiled dum
pl ing soup (matzoh-ball-soup) that Amnon asked for. She then set the food before him, but Amnon, pretending to be petulant and out of sorts, refused to eat.
ellauri171.html on line 1128: When she did this, leaning forward with the food, he took hold of her and pulled her to him, molesting her. Alone and unguarded, she had no chance of fending him off. She resisted him as best she could, she argued and
pl eaded, pointed out that what he was doing was wrong, that they could marry if he wished, that rape would bring ruin to them both.
ellauri171.html on line 1130: Tamar was struggling for her life, not just her virginity. If she was no longer a virgin no-one would want her, no-one would marry her, even though she was the king’s daughter. But her
pl eading had no effect on Amnon. He was too strong for her, and he got in and raped her, in fact repeatedly.
ellauri171.html on line 1133: He shouted at her to get out of his room, get out of his sight, but she
pl eaded with him, trying to retrieve something from this desperate situation. They might still marry, she argued.
ellauri171.html on line 1135: To cast her out now, a violated woman, was worse than raping her, since it meant the crime continued. She could never marry or have children, never have a normal life. As far as the peo
pl e around her were concerned, she would be a used object, unwanted, an outcast. Raping is not bad as such if you provide child support.
ellauri171.html on line 1139: Outside Tamar collapsed onto the floor, wailing. Nearby were the cooling ashes of the fire she had used to cook his food. She
pl unged her hand into them and put the ashes onto her disheveled hair.
ellauri171.html on line 1143: Her appearance, and the women’s quick realization of what had happened,
pl unged the harem into turmoil. The three women most affected were Tamar, her mother Maacah, and Ahinoam, the mother of Amnon. The sisters of Tamar and Amnon would also have been intimately affected.
ellauri171.html on line 1149:
ploads/2019/12/giovanni-domenico-cerrini-italy-1609-1681-04.jpg" width="80%" />
ellauri171.html on line 1154: Prince Amnon refused outright to marry her, the callous streak already evident in David now coming out in the son. David was angry, but did nothing to resolve the situation, or even to punish Amnon for what he had done. This was typical of David – he could never chastise his sons even when they deserved it. Instead he did what many peo
pl e have done when confronted with rape or incest – he protected the abuser rather than the victim, and tried to hush things up.
ellauri171.html on line 1156: Since David did nothing to remedy the wrong, peo
pl e around Tamar were powerless to help the girl. Like many a victim of crime she gradually became invisible, the crime ignored, not spoken of.
ellauri171.html on line 1164: It is to be hoped that Tamar did not accompany her brother to Geshur, since her status there would have been even worse that in Israel. Instead, Maacah may have used what little influence she now had to see that her daughter returned to David’s harem. In either
pl ace Tamar’s position would have been lowly, little better than a servant. Tamar means ‘date palm’; the name suggests a date palm.
ellauri171.html on line 1173: Kuten Naomi sanoo debattipuheenvuorossa, elämä on seppoilua, sen ratkaisevat ratkaisevat valinnat. Mut muista: kun yxi on valinnut on muiden edessä fait accom
pl i. Pidä siis kiirettä! Paizi hei, joissain peleissä se joka valkkaa viimexi nauraa parhaiten. Eikö näin? Sillä on enemmän strategioita käytössä. Tai sitten ei, jos ekan pelaajan valinta vei ne jo. Ei ole helppoa sepolla, eikä ismolla.
ellauri172.html on line 39:
JUONIPALJASTUS play:none">Spoilereita
ellauri172.html on line 67: Se voit la période à ce point accom
pl ie. Näyttää tällä kertaa toteutuneen.
ellauri172.html on line 70: Du pré, du bois, du champ, presque de toutes
pl aces Niityltä, mezästä, pellolta, joka paikasta
ellauri172.html on line 78: Là l'eau trouble bouillonne, et puis s'éparpillant Ku
pl iva vesi kiehuu, ja sitten sieltäkäsin
ellauri172.html on line 81: Comme un nageur venant du profond de son
pl onge, Kuin uimarit jotka sukellettuaan palaa pintaan
ellauri172.html on line 89: Les brins
pl us tôt unis qu'ils ne furent épars Umpimähkät palaa kasaan ilman aikojaan,
ellauri172.html on line 90: Viennent à leur poteau, en cette heureuse
pl ace Saapuu paalupaikalle, tähän onnelaan,
ellauri172.html on line 100:
ploads/2012/07/theodore-agrippa-aubigne.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri172.html on line 148: Yxi Jorin diggaamista Edgar Allan Poe-tyyppisistä sekoiluista oli Villiers d'Isle-Adamin noveletta Veera, jonka mottona luki: L’amour est
pl us fort que la Mort, a dit Salomon : oui, son mystérieux pouvoir est illimité. Paskanjauhantaa. Kuten todettiin hautakirjoitus-albumissa: rakastaminen on elävien askaretta. Kuolleet eivät bylsi eikä juorua. Villiers oli jonkunlainen Hegel-diggari. Tarina ei kaikessa lyhykäisyydessään ollut kummonen:
ellauri172.html on line 150: Un Comte quelconque nomme Alcool vit couché dans un cercueil sa dame de volupté, sa pâlissante épousée, Véra, son désespoir. La nuit dernière, sa bien-aimée s’était évanouie en des joies si profondes que son cœur avait défailli. Cependant leur nature était des
pl us étranges, en vérité ! Certaines idées, celles de l’âme, par exem
pl e, de l’Infini, de Dieu même, étaient comme voilées à leur entendement. La foi d’un grand nombre de vivants aux choses surnaturelles n’était pour eux qu’un sujet de vagues étonnements. Au lieu de cela, les deux amants s’ensevelirent dans l’océan des joies languides et perverses. Veera oli Madonnan näköinen, tottakai. Veera oli kulkija luonnoltaan. Jätkät sätkät parrunpätkät, jasen tervahöyryn nimi, oli PRINSESSA ARMAADA! Continuons.
ellauri172.html on line 153: toteutuu! Jopajjo. Tää on kuultu ennenkin. Ah ! les Idées sont des êtres vivants !… Idealismia nahkoineen ja karvoineen. Et, comme il ne manquait
pl us que Véra elle-même, tangible, extérieure, il fallut bien qu’elle s’y trouvât et que le grand Songe de la Vie et de la Mort entr’ouvrît un moment ses portes infinies ! Le chemin de résurrection était envoyé par la foi jusqu’à elle ! Isoissa alkukirjaimissa on ytyä!
ellauri172.html on line 163: «Nella città di Asti, in Piemonte, il 17 gennaio dell'anno 1749, io nacqui di nobili, agiati ed onesti parenti». Così Alfieri presenta se stesso nella Vita scritta da esso, autobiografia stesa, per la maggior parte, intorno al 1790, ma com
pl etata solo nel 1803. Alfieri ebbe un'attività letteraria breve ma prolifica e intensa; il suo carattere tormentato, oltre a delineare la sua vita in senso avventuroso, fece di lui un precursore delle inquietudini romantiche.
ellauri172.html on line 198: Kalle Stuart kuoli vihdoin 1788, mutta vänrikki ei sitten nainutkaan sen leskeä. Asserì di non voler "avere una sem
pl ice contessa per moglie, potendo avere per amante una regina!" Ei prinsessakaan halunnut menettää Ranskan apanaattia.
ellauri172.html on line 201: Gli avvenimenti in un primo tempo fecero comporre al poeta l'ode A Parigi sbastigliato, che poi però rinnegò: l'entusiasmo si trasformò in odio verso la rivoluzione, es
pl icitato nelle rime de Il Misogallo. Si appassiona anche a recitare le proprie tragedie personalmente, preferendo per sé il ruolo di Sauli Niinistö.
ellauri172.html on line 206: Saul, coraggioso guerriero, fu incoronato re di Israele su richiesta del popolo e consacrato dal sacerdote Samuele, che lo unse in nome di Dio. Col tempo, però, Saul si allontanò da Dio finendo per compiere diversi atti di empietà. Allora Samuele, su ordine del Signore, consacrò re un umile pastore: David. Questi fu chiamato alla corte di Saul per
pl acare con il suo canto l'animo del re, e lì riuscì ad ottenere l'amicizia di Gionata, figlio del re, e la mano della giovane figlia di Saul, Micol.
ellauri172.html on line 216:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/43/Vittorio_Alfieri_e_Carlo_Emanuele_IV.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri172.html on line 227:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/81/The_Battle_of_the_Lapiths_and_The_Centaurs_by_Sebastiano_Ricci%2C_Trinity.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri172.html on line 229:
planet.com/images/9/image920.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri172.html on line 241: ...a man, being just as hungry as thirsty, and
pl aced in between food and drink, must necessarily remain where he is and starve to death.
ellauri172.html on line 254: Later writers satirised this view in terms of an ass which, confronted by both food and water, must necessarily die of both hunger and thirst while pondering a decision. Some proponents of hard determinism have granted the un
pl easantness of the scenario (not for the donkey, it will end up eating both), but have denied that it illustrates a true paradox, since one does not contradict oneself in suggesting that a man might die between two equally
pl ausible routes of action. For exam
pl e, in his Ethics, Benedict de Spinoza suggests that a person who dies because he can't decide is an ass, or worse.
ellauri172.html on line 256: It may be objected, if man does not act from free will, what will happen if the incentives to action are equally balanced, as in the case of Buridan's ass? I am quite ready to admit, that a man
pl aced in the equilibrium described (namely, as perceiving nothing but hunger and thirst, a certain food and a certain drink, each equally distant from him) would die of hunger and thirst. If I am asked, whether such a one should not rather be considered an ass than a man; I answer, that I do not know, neither do I know how a man should be considered, who hangs himself, or how we should consider children, fools, madmen, &c. Hyvä Pentti!
ellauri172.html on line 265: The situation of Buridan's ass was given a mathematical basis in a 1984 paper by American computer scientist Leslie Lamport (LaTex -ladontaskriptikielen kexijä, LOL), in which Lamport presents an argument that, given certain assumptions about continuity in a sim
pl e mathematical model of the Buridan's ass problem, there is always some starting condition under which the ass starves to death, no matter what strategy it takes. He points out that just because we do not see peo
pl e's asses starving to death through indecision, this does not disprove the princi
pl e. The persistence of a Buridan's undecided state for the required length of time may just be sufficiently improbable that it has not been observed.
ellauri172.html on line 267: I don't doubt it, but what of it? Must have happened zillion times say with flies trying to decide between staying on a turd and fleeing. He further illustrates the paradox with the exam
pl e of a driver stopped at a railroad crossing trying to decide whether he has time to cross before a train arrives. Ei tällä höpsästelyllä ole mitään tekemistä apinoiden kanssa eikä niiden jumaloidenkaan.
ellauri172.html on line 269:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/22/Deliberations_of_Congress.jpg" />
ellauri172.html on line 271: Lewis Cass, the Democratic candidate for president in 1848, was contrasted with Buridan's ass by Abraham Lincoln: "Mr. Speaker, we have all heard of the animal standing in doubt between two stacks of hay, and starving to death. The like would never happen to General Cass;
pl ace the stacks a thousand miles apart, he would stand stock still midway between them, and eat them both at once, and the green grass along the line would be apt to suffer some too at the same time."
ellauri172.html on line 285: 26 Then the angel of the Lord moved on ahead and stood in a narrow
pl ace where there was no room to turn, either to the right or to the left. 27 When the donkey saw the angel of the Lord, it lay down under Balaam, and he was angry(E) and beat it with his staff. 28 Then the Lord opened the donkey’s mouth,(F) and it said to Balaam, “What have I done to you to make you beat me these three times?(G)”
ellauri172.html on line 297: 34 Balaam said to the angel of the Lord, “I have sinned.(K) I did not realize you were standing in the road to oppose me. Now if you are dis
pl eased, I will go back.”
ellauri172.html on line 303: 38 “Well, I have come to you now,” Balaam re
pl ied. “But I can’t say whatever I
pl ease. I must speak only what God puts in my mouth.”(N)
ellauri172.html on line 316: Le caractère de la vie qui nous a permis d’unir en une certaine mesure, l’égoïsme et l’altruisme, — union qui est la pierre philosophale des moralistes, — c’est ce que nous avons appelé la fécondité morale. Il faut que la vie individuelle se répande pour autrui, en autrui, et, au besoin, se donne ; eh bien, cette expansion n’est pas contre sa nature : elle est au contraire selon sa nature ; bien
pl us, elle est la condition même de la vraie vie. L’école utilitaire a été forcée de s’arrêter,
pl us ou moins hésitante, devant cette antithèse perpétuelle du moi et du toi, du mien et du tien, de l’intérêtpersonnel et de notre intérêt général ; mais la nature vivaute ne s’arrête pas à cette division tranchée et logiquement inflexible : la vie individuelle est expansive pour autrui parce qu’elle est féconde, et elle est féconde par cela même qu’elle est la vie.
ellauri172.html on line 318: Au point de vue physique, nous l’avons vu, c’est un besoin individuel que d’engendrer un autre individu, si bien que cet autre devient comme une condition de nous-même. La vie, comme le feu, ne se conserve qu’en se communiquant. Et cela est vrai de l’intelligence non moins que du corps ; il est aussi impossible de renfermer l’intelligence en soi que la flamme : elle est faite pour rayonner. Même force d’expansion dans la sensibilité : il faut que nous partagions notre joie, il faut que nous partagions notre douleur. C’est tout notre être qui est sociable : la vie ne connaît pas les classifications et les divisions absolues des logiciens et des métaphysiciens : elle ne peut pas être com
pl ètement égoïste, quand même elle le voudrait. Nous sommes ouverts de toutes parts, de toutes parts envahissants et envahis. Cela tient à la loi fondamentale que la biologie nous a fournie : La vie n’est pas seulement nutrition, elle est production et fécondité. Vivre, c’est dépenser aussi bien qu’acquérir.
ellauri172.html on line 322: L’être vivant n’est pas purement et sim
pl ement un calculateur à la Bentham, un financier faisant sur son grand livre la balance des profits et des pertes : vivre, ce n’est pas calculer, c’est agir. Il y a dans l’être vivant une accumulation de force, une réserve d’activité qui se dépense non pour le
pl aisir de se dépenser, mais parce qu’il faut qu’elle se dépense : une cause ne peut pas ne pas produire ses effets, même sans considération de fin.
ellauri172.html on line 324: Le second équivalent, nous l’avons trouvé dans la théorie des idées-forces soutenue par un philosophe contemporain : l’idée même de l’action supérieure, comme celle de toute action, est une force tendant à la réaliser. L’idée est même déjà la réalisation commencée de l’action supérieure ; l’obligation n’est, à ce point de vue, que le sentiment de la profonde identité qui existe entre la pensée et l’action ; c’est par cela même le sentiment de l’unité de l’être, de l’unité de la vie. Celui qui ne conforme pas son action à sa
pl us haute pensée est en lutte avec lui-même, divisé intérieurement. Sur ce point encore l’hédonisme est dépassé ; il ne s’agit pas de calculer des
pl aisirs, de faire de la comptabilité et de la finalité : il s’agit d’être et de vivre, de se sentir être, de se sentir vivre, d’agir comme on est et comme on vit, de ne pas être une sorte de mensonge en action, mais une vérité en action.
ellauri172.html on line 328: Pro tertio: Le bonheur purement égoïste de certains épicuriens est une chimère, une abstraction, une impossibilité : les vrais
pl aisirs humains sont tous
pl us ou moins sociaux. L’égoïsme pur, avons-nous dit, au lieu d’être une réelle affirmation de soi, est une mutilation de soi.
ellauri172.html on line 330: Peut-être notre terre, peut-être l’humanité arriveront-elles aussi à un but ignoré qu’elles se seront créé à elles-mêmes. Nulle main ne nous dirige, nul œil ne voit pour nous ; le gouvernail est brisé depuis longtemps ou
pl utôt il n’y en a jamais eu, il est à faire : c’est une grande tâche, et c’est notre tâche.
ellauri172.html on line 521: Noch zu suchen das vermißte Gut, Ja kiellettyä a
pl aria maistamaan
ellauri172.html on line 550: En ces sortes de repas découronnés de femmes, les hommes les
pl us polis et les mieux élevés perdent de leur charme de politesse et de leur distinction naturelle ; et quoi d’étonnant ?… Ils n’ont
pl us la galerie à laquelle ils veulent
pl aire, et ils contractent immédiatement quelque chose de sans-gêne, qui devient grossier au moindre attouchement, au moindre choc des esprits les uns par les autres. L’égoïsme, l’inexilable égoïsme, que l’art du monde est de voiler sous des formes aimables, met bientôt les coudes sur la table, en attendant qu’il vous les mette dans les côtés.
ellauri172.html on line 552: Après la politique, la haine des Bourbons, le spectre noir de la Congrégation, les regrets du passé pour ces vaincus, toutes ces avalanches qui roulaient en bouillonnant d’un bout à l’autre de cette table fumante, il y avait d’autres sujets de conversation, à tempêtes et à tintamarres. Par exem
pl e, il y avait les femmes. La femme est l’éternel sujet de conversation des hommes entre eux, surtout en France, le pays le
pl us fat de la terre. Il y avait les femmes en général et les femmes en particulier, — les femmes de l’univers et celle de la porte à côté, — les femmes des pays que beaucoup de ces soldats avaient parcourus, en faisant les beaux dans leurs grands uniformes victorieux, et celles de la ville, chez lesquelles ils n’allaient peut-être pas, et qu’ils nommaient insolemment par nom et prénom, comme s’ils les avaient intimement connues, sur le compte de qui, parbleu ! ils ne se gênaient pas, et dont, au dessert, ils pelaient en riant la réputation, comme ils pelaient une pêche, pour, après, en casser le noyau. Tous prenaient part à ces bombardements de femmes, même les
pl us vieux, les
pl us coriaces, les
pl us dégoûtés de la femelle, ainsi qu’ils disaient cyniquement, car les hommes peuvent renoncer à l’amour malpropre, mais jamais à l’amour-propre de la femme, et, fût-ce sur le bord de leur fosse ouverte, ils sont toujours prêts à tremper leurs museaux dans ces galimafrées de fatuité !
ellauri172.html on line 558: S’il avait cru que c’était Dieu, le Dieu vivant, le Dieu vengeur qu’il jetait aux porcs, au risque de la foudre sur le coup ou de l’enfer, sûrement, pour
pl us tard, il y aurait eu là du moins de la bravoure, du mépris de
pl us que la mort, puisque Dieu, s’il est, peut éterniser ta torture.
ellauri172.html on line 563: Et, pendant qu’il parlait de s’agenouiller, il grandissait, et, comme la fiancée de Corinthe dans la poésie de Goethe, il semblait, sans s’être levé de sa chaise, grandi du buste jusqu’au
pl afond:
ellauri172.html on line 565: M. Reniant ne croyait pas que ces hosties fussent Dieu. Il n’avait pas là-dessus le moindre doute. Pour lui, ce n’étaient que des morceaux de pain à chanter, consacrés par une superstition imbécile, et pour lui, comme pour toi-même, mon pauvre Rançonnet, vider la boîte aux hosties dans l’auge aux cochons, n’était pas
pl us héroïque que d’y vider une tabatière ou un cornet de pains à cacheter.
ellauri172.html on line 570: Mais non, — cria-t-il, — tonnerre de tonnerres ! c’est impossible ! Voyez-vous, vous autres, le chef d’escadron Mesnilgrand à confesse, comme une vieille bonne femme, à deux genoux sur le strapontin, le nez au guichet, dans la guérite d’un prêtre ? Voilà un spectacle qui ne m’entrera jamais dans le crâne ! Trente mille balles
pl utôt. — Mille bombes ! — fit Capitain Haddock, exalté.
ellauri172.html on line 583: On l’aurait cru le produit d’un mélange de
pl usieurs races. Il disait, lui, qu’il fallait prononcer son nom à la grecque : Άϊδον, pour Ydow, parce qu’il était d’origine grecque, et sa beauté l’aurait fait croire, car il était beau, et, le Diable m’emporte ! peut-être trop pour un soldat.
ellauri172.html on line 587: Il faisait son devoir, mais il ne faisait jamais
pl us que son devoir. Je l’ai rencontrée très frappante dans un des bustes d’Antinoüs… tenez ! Antinoushan oli homo! Ce n’était pas Endymion : c’était un tigre, ristiverinen… Endymion oli kreikkalaisessa mytologiassa komea paimen, joka perusti Eliin kaupungin, jonka kuningas hän oli. Endymion, johon kuun jumalatar Selene rakastui, oli Zeuksen pojanpoika. Tarun mukaan jumalatar Selene rakastui Endymioniin ja synnytti hänelle viisikymmentä tytärtä. Taas tuli halkiohaara! Niitä typeriä epyllejä taas.
ellauri172.html on line 590: Nous on a ete de "mauvais sujets", mais, il y avait des choses, — pas beaucoup ! mais enfin il y en avait bien une ou deux, dont, si démons que nous fussions, nous n’aurions pas été capables, comme par exem
pl es donner du cul. Mais, lui (prétendait-on), il était capable de tout. Ils l’accusaient de servilité avec les chefs et de basse ambition. Ils allèrent même jusqu’à le soupçonner d’espionnage. Il était aussi à la fois heureux au jeu et heureux en femmes ; ce qui n’est pas l’usage non
pl us. Rumat miehet ovat yhtä mustasukkaisia könsikkäille kuin rumat naiset.
ellauri172.html on line 592: No mutta mitähän hirmu pahaa se sitten oli tehnyt kysyi porthosmainen Ranconnet. Restel dans le rang, älä keskeytä! Tulen ihan kohta siihen. Nimittäin kaikki oli taas kerran sen ämmän vika! Mais une femme, c’est l’aimant du diable ! Il y a une proportion d’arithmétique morale, écrite, avant qu’elle le fût par un philosophe sur du papier, dans la poitrine de tous les hommes, comme un encouragement du Démon : « c’est qu’il y a
pl us loin d’une femme à son premier amant, que de son premier au dixième! Vittu tää Barney on läpimätä!
ellauri172.html on line 594: Puisqu’elle s’était donnée à lui, elle pouvait bien se donner à un autre, et, ma foi ! tout le monde pouvait être cet autre-là ! En un temps fort court, au 8e dragons, on sut combien il y avait peu d’audace dans cette espérance. Pour tous ceux qui ont le flair de la femme, et qui en respirent la vraie odeur à travers tous les voiles blancs et parfumés de vertu dans lesquels elle s’entortille, la Rosalba fut reconnue tout de suite pour la
pl us corrompue des femmes corrompues, — dans le mal, une perfection!
ellauri172.html on line 596: « Et je ne la calomnie point, n’est-ce pas, Rançonnet ?… Tu l’as eue peut-être, et si tu l’as eue, tu sais maintenant s’il fut jamais une
pl us brillante, une
pl us fascinante cristallisation de tous les vices ! Où le major l’avait-il prise ?… D’où sortait-elle ? Elle était si jeune !
ellauri172.html on line 598: Nous étions accoutumés à de belles filles, si vous voulez, mais presque toujours du même type, décidé, hardi, presque masculin, presque effronté ; le
pl us souvent de belles brunes
pl us ou moins passionnées, qui ressemblaient à de jeunes garçons (mmm!), très piquantes et très voluptueuses sous l’uniforme que la fantaisie de leurs amants leur faisait porter quelquefois…
ellauri172.html on line 606: Qui donc a dit — ce doit être un Anglais — que le monde est l’œuvre du Diable, devenu fou ? C’était sûrement ce Diable-là qui, dans un accès de folie, avait créé la Rosalba, pour se faire le
pl aisir… du Diable, de fricasser, l’une après l’autre, la volupté dans la pudeur et la pudeur dans la volupté, et de pimenter, avec un condiment céleste, le ragoût infernal des jouissances qu’une femme puisse donner à des hommes mortels.
ellauri172.html on line 608: La Rosalba était pudique comme elle était voluptueuse, et le
pl us extraordinaire, c’est qu’elle l’était en même temps. Quand elle disait ou faisait les choses les
pl us… osées, elle avait d’adorables manières de dire : « J’ai honte ! » que j’entends encore. Phénomène inouï ! Elle fût sortie d’une orgie de bacchantes, comme l’Innocence de son premier péché. Jusque dans la femme vaincue, pâmée, à demi morte, on retrouvait la vierge confuse, avec la grâce toujours fraîche de ses troubles et le charme auroral de ses rougeurs… (Vizi tää hemmo on aika sick. Mutta se on just kuten Huismanni totesi: pyllistely tuntuu vielä rotevammalta kun pyllyn takana kyttää kiivas Jehova piiska handussa. Niin varmaan junioriapinastakin joka pääsee salaa silverbäkin nartun vulvalle. Sisään vaan vaikkei seisokkaan!)
ellauri172.html on line 612: Napsun sisko princesse Pauline Borghese était constamment infidèle et, selon les mémoires de la duchesse d'Abrantès, était capable d'entretenir simultanément trois liaisons. Elle était affligée de problèmes gynécologiques, exacerbés par sa promiscuité bacchanienne, au point qu'un médecin lui conseilla l'ap
pl ication de sangsues à la vulve. Sa santé décline et elle meurt des suites d'un cancer du foie — à Florence, quatre ans après son frère, le 9 juin 1825 âgée de 44 ans, sans descendance.
ellauri172.html on line 616: Palataxemme sarvijäärään: elle se mit à briller au milieu de ces filles brunes d’Espagne, comme un diamant dans une torsade de jais. Ce fut là qu’elle commença de produire sur les hommes ces effets d’acharnement qui tenaient, sans doute, à la composition diabolique de son être, et qui faisaient d’elle la
pl us enragée des courtisanes, avec la figure d’une des
pl us célestes madones de Raphaël.
ellauri172.html on line 627: Non, si je la quittai, ce fut pour une raison de dégoût moral, de fierté pour moi, de mépris pour elle, pour elle qui, au
pl us fort des caresses les
pl us insensées, ne me faisait pas croire qu’elle m’aimât… Quand je lui demandais : M’aimes-tu ? ce mot qu’il est impossible de ne pas dire, même à travers toutes les preuves qu’on vous donne que vous êtes aimé, elle répondait : « Non ! » ou secouait énigmatiquement la tête. Elle se roulait dans ses pudeurs et dans ses hontes, et elle restait là-dessous, au milieu de tous les désordres de sens soulevés, impénétrable comme le sphinx. Seulement, le sphinx était froid, et elle ne l’était pas… Mikä Katariina Suuri sekin oli olevinaan!
ellauri172.html on line 635: Quand cet enfant mourut, car il mourut quelques mois après sa naissance, le major eut un chagrin très exalté, un chagrin à folies, et on n’en rit pas dans le régiment. Pour la première fois, l’antipathie dont il était l’objet se tut. On le
pl aignit beaucoup
pl us que la mère qui, si elle
pl eura sa géniture, n’en continua pas moins d’être la Rosalba que nous connaissions tous, cette singulière catin arrosée de pudeur par le Diable, qui avait, malgré ses mœurs, conservé la faculté, qui tenait du prodige, de rougir jusqu’à l’épine dorsale deux cents fois par jour ! Sa beauté ne diminua pas. Elle résistait à toutes les avaries. Et, cependant, la vie qu’elle menait devait faire très vite d’elle ce qu’on appelle entre cavaliers une vieille chabraque, si cette vie de perdition avait duré. »
ellauri172.html on line 643: La haine pour les Français gagnait du terrain, eikä ihme. Cette femme m’intéressait comme spectateur, et qui cachait les déportements du vice le
pl us impudent sous les déconcertements les
pl us charmants de l’innocence. Mä päinvastoin kätkin tän viattomuuteni tähän törkyupseerin valepukuun.
ellauri172.html on line 647: À moitié couchée sur un guéridon, elle écrivait… Or, si elle écrivait, la Pudica, c’était, pas de doute ! à quelque amant, pour quelque rendez-vous, pour quelque infidélité nouvelle au major Ydow, qui les dévorait toutes, comme elle dévorait le
pl aisir, en silence. Lorsque j’entrai, sa lettre était écrite, et elle faisait fondre pour la cacheter, à la flamme d’une bougie, de la cire bleue pailletée d’argent, que je vois encore, et vous allez savoir, tout à l’heure, pourquoi le souvenir de cette cire bleue pailletée d’argent m’est resté si clair.
ellauri172.html on line 658: « Faut-il que je le répète jusqu’à satiété ? Certes ! je n’étais pas jaloux de cette femme : mais nous sommes tous les mêmes. Malgré moi, je voulus voir à qui elle écrivait, et, pour cela, ne m’étant pas assis encore, je m’inclinai par-dessus sa tête ; mais mon regard fut intercepté par l’entre-deux de ses épaules, par cette fente enivrante et duvetée où j’avais fait ruisseler tant de baisers, et, ma foi ! magnétisé par cette vue, j’en fis tomber un de
pl us dans ce ruisseau d’amour, et cette sensation l’empêcha d’écrire… Elle releva sa tête de la table où elle était penchée, comme si on lui eût piqué les reins d’une pointe de feu, se cambrant sur le dossier de son fauteuil, la tête renversée ; elle me regardait, dans ce mélange de désir et de confusion qui était son charme, les yeux en l’air et tournés vers moi, qui étais derrière elle, et qui fis descendre dans la rose mouillée de sa bouche entr’ouverte ce que je venais de faire tomber dans l’entre-deux de ses épaules.
ellauri172.html on line 662: « Oui, — reprit amèrement Mesnilgrand, — c’est encore là un des revenants-bons de l’adultère et du partage ! En ces moments-là, les
pl us fendants ne sont pas fiers, et, par générosité pour une femme épouvantée, ils deviennent aussi lâches qu’elle, et font cette lâcheté de se cacher. J’en ai, je crois, mal au cœur encore d’être entré dans ce
pl acard, en uniforme et le sabre au côté, et, comble de ridicule ! pour une femme qui n’avait pas d’honneur à perdre et que je n’aimais pas !
ellauri172.html on line 666: Le major Ydow tomba dans une de ces rages qui déshonorent le caractère d’un homme, et cribla la Pudica d’injures ignobles, d’injures de cocher. Je crus qu’il la rouerait de coups. Les coups allaient venir, mais un peu
pl us tard. Il lui reprocha, — en quels termes ! d’être… tout ce qu’elle était. Il fut brutal, abject, révoltant ; et elle, à toute cette fureur, répondit en vraie femme qui n’a
pl us rien à ménager, qui connaît jusqu’à l’axe l’homme à qui elle s’est accou
pl ée, et qui sait que la bataille éternelle est au fond de cette bauge de la vie à deux. Elle fut moins ignoble, mais
pl us atroce,
pl us insultante et
pl us cruelle dans sa froideur, que lui dans sa colère. Elle fut insolente, ironique, riant du rire hystérique de la haine dans son paroxysme le
pl us aigu, et répondant au torrent d’injures que le major lui vomissait à la face par de ces mots comme les femmes en trouvent, quand elles veulent nous rendre fous, et qui tombent sur nos violences et dans nos soulèvements comme des grenades à feu dans de la poudre. De tous ces mots outrageants à froid qu’elle aiguisait, celui avec lequel elle le dardait le
pl us, c’est qu’elle ne l’aimait pas — qu’elle ne l’avait jamais aimé : « Jamais ! jamais ! jamais ! » répétait-elle, avec une furie joyeuse, comme si elle lui eût dansé des entrechats sur le cœur ! — Or, cette idée — qu’elle ne l’avait jamais aimé — était ce qu’il y avait de
pl us féroce, de
pl us affolant pour ce fat heureux, pour cet homme dont la beauté avait fait ravage, et qui, derrière son amour pour elle, avait encore sa vanité ! Aussi arriva-t-il une minute où, n’y tenant
pl us, sous le dard de ce mot, impitoyablement répété, qu’elle ne l’avait jamais aimé, et qu’il ne voulait pas croire, et qu’il repoussait toujours :
ellauri172.html on line 672: « J’imaginai ce qui dut se passer dans les yeux verts du major, en entendant son miaulement étranglé de chat sauvage. Il poussa un juron à fendre le ciel. — Et de qui est-il ? garce maudite ! — demanda-t-il, avec quelque chose qui n’était
pl us une voix.
ellauri172.html on line 676: « — Tu ne le sauras pas ! — dit-elle, en le narguant. Et elle le cingla de ce tu ne le sauras pas ! mille fois répété, mille fois infligé à ses oreilles ; et quand elle fut lasse de le dire, — le croiriez-vous ? — elle le lui chanta comme une fanfare ! Puis, quand elle l’eut assez fouetté avec ce mot, assez fait tourner comme une toupie sous le fouet de ce mot, assez roulé avec ce mot dans les spirales de l’anxiété et de l’incertitude, cet homme, hors de lui, et qui n’était
pl us entre ses mains qu’une marionnette qu’elle allait casser ; quand, cynique à force de haine, elle lui eut dit, en les nommant par tous leurs noms, les amants qu’elle avait eus, et qu’elle eut fait le tour du corps d’officiers tout entier : « Je les ai eus tous, — cria-t-elle, — mais ils ne m’ont pas eue, eux ! Et cet enfant que tu es assez bête pour croire le tien, a été fait par le seul homme que j’aie jamais aimé ! que j’aie jamais idolâtré ! Et tu ne l’as pas deviné ! Et tu ne le devines pas encore ? »
ellauri172.html on line 678: « Elle mentait. Elle n’avait jamais aimé un homme. Mais elle sentait bien que le coup de poignard pour le major était dans ce mensonge, et elle l’en dagua, elle l’en larda, elle l’en hacha, et quand elle en eut assez d’être le bourreau de ce sup
pl ice, elle lui enfonça pour en finir, comme on enfonce un couteau jusqu’au manche, son dernier aveu dans le cœur:
ellauri172.html on line 684: Le major Ydow avait fait embaumer le cœur de son fils pour mieux l’emporter avec lui partout, et il l’avait déposé pieusement dans une urne de cristal, habituellement
pl acée sur une encoignure, dans sa chambre à coucher. C’était cette urne qui volait en morceaux.
ellauri172.html on line 692: Satan me donna la force d’enfoncer la porte du
pl acard ou j'etsis cache et je vis… ce que je ne reverrai jamais ! La Pudica, terrassée, était tombée sur la table où elle avait écrit, et le major l’y retenait d’un poignet de fer, tous voiles relevés, son beau corps à nu, tordu, comme un serpent coupé, sous son étreinte. Mais que croyez-vous qu’il faisait de son autre main, Messieurs ?… Cette table à écrire, la bougie allumée, la cire à côté, toutes ces circonstances avaient donné au major une idée infernale, — l’idée de cacheter cette femme, comme elle avait cacheté sa lettre — et il était dans l’acharnement de ce monstrueux cachetage, de cette effroyable vengeance d’amant perversement jaloux !
ellauri172.html on line 696: « Il ne me vit pas. Il était penché sur sa victime, qui ne criait
pl us, et c’était le pommeau de son sabre qu’il enfonçait dans la cire bouillante et qui lui servait de cachet !
ellauri172.html on line 698: « Je bondis sur lui ; je ne lui dis même pas de se défendre, et je lui
pl ongeai mon sabre jusqu’à la garde dans le dos, entre les épaules, et j’aurais voulu, du même coup, lui
pl onger ma main et mon bras avec mon sabre à travers le corps, pour le tuer mieux ! »
ellauri172.html on line 710: « Je n’ai
pl us eu jamais des nouvelles de la Rosalba, dite la Pudica, — répondit Mesnilgrand. — Est-elle morte ? A-t-elle pu vivre encore ? Le chirurgien a-t-il pu aller jusqu’à elle ? Après la surprise d’Alcudia, qui nous fut si fatale, je le cherchai. Je ne le trouvai pas. Il avait disparu, comme tant d’autres, et n’avait pas rejoint les débris de notre régiment décimé.
ellauri172.html on line 714: Well, j’ai porté
pl usieurs années, ce cœur d’enfant dont je doutais ; mais quand, après la catastrophe de Waterloo, il m’a fallu ôter cette ceinture d’officier dans laquelle j’avais espéré de mourir, et que je l’eus porté encore quelques années, ce cœur, — et je t’assure, Mautravers, que c’est lourd, quoique cela paraisse bien léger, — la réflexion venant avec l’âge, j’ai craint de profaner un peu
pl us ce cœur si profané déjà, et je me suis décidé à le déposer en terre chrétienne. Sans entrer dans les détails que je vous donne aujourd’hui, j’en ai parlé à un des prêtres de cette ville, de ce cœur qui pesait depuis si longtemps sur le mien, et je venais de le remettre à lui-même, dans le confessionnal de la chapelle.
ellauri172.html on line 733: Elle seule les sait rafraîchir, en
pl eurant. Ne osaa huuhtasta, itkun avulla.
ellauri172.html on line 748:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e8/Olof_Overselo.jpg" style="float:right;width:20%;padding:1em" />
ellauri172.html on line 751: Il aurait été baptisé en 1014 à Rouen par l'archevêque Robert le Danois, frère du duc Richard II de Normandie. C'est d'abord en tant que Viking dans sa jeunesse, qu'il se rend
pl usieurs fois en Angleterre, où il va s'intéresser à la foi chrétienne. Elle avait d'ailleurs été introduite dès le ixe siècle en Scandinavie par des missionnaires de divers pays notamment allemands, et principalement le moine saint Anschaire, l'« apôtre du Nord », devenu
pl us tard évêque de Brême, puis archevêque de Hambourg.
ellauri172.html on line 757: Il est le grand législateur de l'Église en Norvège et, comme son parent Olaf Tryggvason, il tente de faire disparaître les traces de l'ancienne foi et de bâtir des églises à la
pl ace des anciens lieux sacrés qu'il a profanés ou détruits. Il fait aussi venir des évêques et des prêtres d'Angleterre.
ellauri172.html on line 767: One of St. Olaf's chief attractions is a giant black hole, which the townspeo
pl e enjoyed standing around and looking at - which prompted Dorothy to refer to St. Olaf sarcastically as the real "entertainment capital of the world." St. Olafians also celebrate various oddly themed festivals, including; "Hay Day" (the day everyone in town celebrates hay),"The Crowning of the Princess Pig", "The Day of the Wheat" (where everyone goes to town dressed like sandwiches), "The Festival of the Dancing Sturgeons" (a festival where the townsfolk watch sturgeons flopping around on the dock), a "Butter Queen" competition (in which Rose almost won, however her churn jammed causing her to believe it had been tampered with), and a milk diving competition (Rose ranked in the "low fat" division), as well as many other events.
ellauri172.html on line 769: St. Olaf appears to be a bilingual town with a significant amount of unique vocabulary (that may be specific to the area and not appearing in standard Norwegian). Rose uses these phrases quite often, to the exasperation of her roommates. Exam
pl es include Gerkanenaken (when dog feces turn white), Tutenbobels (buttocks), Ugel and Flugel (a Hide and seek game for adults) and Vanskapkaka (a special "friendship" cake; this word, however, is based on the Swedish word "vänskapskaka", which holds the same meaning). German, Swedish and Norwegian is the basis of the
ellauri172.html on line 773: Vertugenflürgen, a word used by Rose that is the St. Olaf equivalent of "I'm not one to blow my own horn.", with 'vertugenflürgen' re
pl acing 'horn'. Sophia claimed she couldn't even reach hers, which may im
pl y a more ex
pl icit meaning - or Sophia being her usual sarcastic self.
ellauri172.html on line 775: Guggenspritzer, a St. Olaf version of Monopoly. There is no money due to the bank, built by a bad contractor, sinking into a swamp leaving nothing but safety deposit slips and a pen on a chain. Also, you can buy the library or the phone booth, yet 'peo
pl e use the phone booth'. Rose managed to win the entire game by buying one street - the only street in St Olaf.
ellauri172.html on line 788: Ma
pl e Syrup Honey Brown Sugar Molasses Rice Krispies log. A favorite of Rose and her family that, as the name im
pl ies, is incredibly sugary. Dorothy tried it and couldn't believe the sheer sweetness of the log. Later, when Rose's daughter Kirsten visited and gave a log to Blanche and Dorothy, Dorothy told Blanche: "It's a log, I'm going to burn it!"
ellauri172.html on line 806: Paha ateisti Roth tapatti ainoan sikiönsä Margaretilla eikä saanut Bloomin kanssa aikaan muuta kuin lihavia riitoja. Antiteistikin se oli, "I'm exactly the opposite of religious, I'm anti-religious. I find religious peo
pl e hideous. I hate the religious lies. It's all a big lie. I give a shit about the sheep referred to as believers. When I write, I'm alone. It's filled with fear and loneliness and anxiety—and I never needed religion to save me." Jumala kosti sille, ei tullut Noobelia. Kikkailevaa Philippiä sattui leukaan.
ellauri172.html on line 838: Les Fiancés (I promessi sposi), roman d'Alessandro Manzoni, 1825-1827. Il y a
pl usieurs ecclésiastiques importants dans ce roman : Don Abbondio[4],[5], Saint Abbondio est le saint patron de la ville de Côme, le cardinal Borromée canonisé au xviie siècle, cité dans l'ouvrage et personnage ayant réellement existé, le père Cristoforo brûlant d'humilité chrétienne et tendu vers le bien.
ellauri172.html on line 848: La Duchesse de Langeais, roman d'Honoré de Balzac (1834). Le Vidame de Pamiers (à la fois titre d'archevêque et titre nobiliaire). Il protège la réputation de sa cousine Antoinette de Langeais. Dans Ferragus, il donne de bons conseils à Auguste de Maulincour, dans Le Contrat de mariage, il protège Victurnien d'Esgrignon, et dans S
pl endeurs et misères des courtisanes, il n'est
pl us qu'un habitué des salons mondains.
ellauri172.html on line 856: S
pl endeurs et misères des courtisanes, roman d'Honoré de Balzac, 1838-1847, l'abbé Carlos Herrera sous l'habit duquel se cache Vautrin.
CHECK
ellauri172.html on line 920: Le Journal d'un curé de campagne, roman de Georges Bernanos, 1936, avec le curé de Torcy, personnage inspiré à Bernanos par ses souvenirs d'enfance de Fressin, et le curé d'Ambricourt[38] qui emprunte
pl usieurs traits au curé Fenouille de Monsieur Ouine.
CHECK
ellauri180.html on line 33:
KAYLA ANCRUM play:none">Värikästä
ellauri180.html on line 51: In the books, Elena was popular, selfish and a "mean girl". However, the show's producers, Julie Plec and Kevin Williamson, felt that it wasn't the direction they wanted to go with their heroine in The Young Adult Vampire Diaries television series. Instead, she became a nicer, relatable, and more of "the girl next door" type, until her life gets flipped upside down when she meets the Salvatore Brothers. Stefan Salvatore is a good-hearted and affectionate young adult vampire and the com
pl ete opposite of his older brother, Damon Salvatore. Stefan's malevolent young adult vampire brother is mostly thought of as selfish and manipulative, but later on begins to dis
pl ay a more caring side.
ellauri180.html on line 53: Executive producers Julie Plec and Kevin Williamson agreed that in the book series, Elena was turned into a vampire too early, which was around page 200 of The Awakening. Elena's transition into a vampire was
pl anned for two years. Plec said: "That felt obviously too soon, and rushed, and we didn’t want to make a show about a teenage girl who instantly becomes a vampire. But we always knew that her journey would take her there eventually". At the second season's conclusion, Elena was nearly turned into a vampire. Dobrev was happy that she wasn't, because she felt "it would have been like she came too soon", and also didn't think it was something Elena or she wanted.
ellauri180.html on line 64: Tässä albumissa on edellisestä ylivuotanutta mazkua, kun sinne yllättäen kyynärpäili 2 maailmanluokan kirjailijaa, nim. Philip Roth ja Ernesto "Che" Hemingway. Tumpelompi John Irving sai luvan siirtyä käytävällä eteenpäin. Ehkä tähän mahtuu seuraxi vielä Norman Mailerin jeesustelu,
pl us sen verrokkina Tatu Vaaskiven vastaava, et tälläsiä B-luokan tähtiä.
ellauri180.html on line 164: 20-luvulla kaikki pojat Irwingin orpokodissa ympärileikattiin koska lääkärillä oli ollut vaivaa suuren sodan sotilaiden kullivaivoista. Tämä tieto
pl us muistot teiniajan fimoosista pani miettimään seuraavaa.
ellauri180.html on line 174: OBJECTIVES: Globally approximately 25% of men are circumcised for religious, cultural, medical, or parental choice reasons. However, controversy surrounds the procedure, and its benefits and risks to health. We review current knowledge of the health benefits and risks associated with male circumcision. METHODS: We have used, where available, previously conducted reviews of the relation between male circumcision and specific outcomes as "benchmarks", and updated them by searching the Medline database for more recent information. RESULTS: There is substantial evidence that circumcision protects males from HIV infection, penile carcinoma, urinary tract infections, and ulcerative sexually transmitted diseases. We could find little scientific evidence of adverse effects on sexual, psychological, or emotional health. Surgical risks associated with circumcision, particularly bleeding, penile injury, and local infection, as well as the consequences of the pain experienced with neonatal circumcision, are valid concerns that require appropriate responses. CONCLUSION: Further analyses of the utility and cost effectiveness of male circumcision as a preventive health measure should, in the light of this information, be research and policy priorities. A decision as to whether to recommend male circumcision in a given society should be based upon an assessment of the risk for and occurrence of the diseases which are associated with the presence of the foreskin, versus the risk of the com
pl ications of the procedure. In order for individuals and their families to make an informed decision, they should be provided with the best available evidence regarding the known benefits and risks. And they should also know what God thinks of it.
ellauri180.html on line 179: Despite an estimated one-sixth of the world's men having been circumcised, it has long been forgotten where or why this most intriguing operation began. The procedure has been performed for religious, cultural and medical reasons, although the last has only become fashionable since the rise of modern surgery in the 19th century. Accordingly, the indications for surgery have surfaced, submerged and altered with the trends of the day. In this review we ex
pl ore the origins of circumcision, and discuss the techniques and controversies that have evolved since the event has become medicalized.
ellauri180.html on line 181: Anthropologists do not agree on the origins of circumcision. The English egyptologist, Sir Graham Elliot Smith, suggested that it is one of the features of a heliolithic' culture which, over some 15 000 years ago, spread over much of the world. Others believe that it may have originated independently within several different cultures; certainly, many of the natives that Columbus found inhabiting the New World' were circumcised. However, it is known that circumcision had been practised in the Near East, patchily throughout tribal Africa, among the Moslem peo
pl es of India and of south-east Asia, as well as by Australian Aborgines, for as long as we can tell. The earliest Egyptian mummies (1300 BCE) were circumcised and wall paintings in Egypt show that it was customary several thousand years earlier than that.
ellauri180.html on line 183: In some African tribes, circumcision is performed at birth. In Judaic societies, the ritual is performed on the eighth day after birth, but for Moslems and many of the tribal cultures it is performed in early adult life as a rite of passage', e.g. puberty or marriage. Why the practice evolved is not clear and many theories have been proposed. Nineteenth century historians suggested that the ritual is an ancient form of social control. They conceive that the slitting of a man's penis to cause bleeding and pain is to remind him of the power of the Church, i.e. We have control over your distinction to be a man, your
pl easure and your right to reproduce'. The ritual is a warning and the timing dictates who is warned; for the new-born it is the parents who accede to the Church: We mark your son, who belongs to us, not to you'. For the young adolescent, the warning accompanies the aggrandisement of puberty; the time when growing strength give independence, and the rebellion of youth.
ellauri180.html on line 189: There are many other reasons why circumcision may have evolved. Some have suggested that it is a mark of cultural identity, akin to a tattoo or a body piercing. Alternatively, there are reasons to believe that the ritual evolved as a fertility rite. For exam
pl e, that some tribal cultures apportion seasons' for both the male and female operation, supports the view that circumcision developed as a sacrifice to the gods, an offering in exchange for a good harvest, etc. This would seem reasonable as the penis is clearly inhabited by powers that produce life. Indeed, evidence of a connection with darvests is also found in Nicaragua, where blood from the operations is mixed with maize to be eaten during the ceremony. (Fig. 3). Although the true origins of circumcision will never be known, it is likely that the truth lies in part with all of the theories described.
ellauri180.html on line 195: Abernathy (1928) who was a reluctant surgeon) does report the use of the bistoury (knife) to achieve circumcision in men with gonoccocal phimosis'. He also states that the bleeding should be stanched with iodoform and boric', possibly indicating that sutures were not ap
pl ied.
ellauri180.html on line 197: Baillie (1833) also describes gonococcal phimosis and recommends that the initial treatment is nugatory' (inoperative) involving the washing of the penis (and under the prepuce with soap and tepid water, followed by the ap
pl ication of calomel ointment. Abernathy also warns against immediate circumcision in the face of a morbidly sensitive surface' (and declares that Sir Edward Home agrees with him!). He advocates that the posthitis (inflamed foreskin) should be allowed to soothe and allay' before surgical intervention. We can assume that the com
pl ications recognized by both Abernathy and Baillie were re-phimosis, re-stricture or suppuration; what is clear is that circumcision was not a procedure taken lightly at that time. Interestingly, neither author mentions circumcision in the neonate, suggesting that it had not yet significantly entered the domain of English surgeons.
ellauri180.html on line 198: By the middle of the 19th century, anaesthesia and antisepsis were rapidly changing surgical practice. The first reported circumcision in the surgical accounts of St Bartholomew's Hospital was in 1865; although this comprised only one of the 417 operations performed that year, it was clearly becoming a more common procedure. Indeed, this was a time when surgical cures were being ex
pl ored for all ails and in 1878 Curling described circumcision as a cure for impotence in men who also had as associated phimosis. Many other surgeons reported circumcision as being beneficial for a diverse range of sexual problems. Walsham (1903) re-iterates the putative association of phimosis with impotence and suggests that it may also predispose to sterility, priapism, excess masturbation and even venereal disease. Warren (1915) adds epilepsy, nocturnal enuresis, night terrors and precocious sexual unrest' to the list of dangers, and this accepted catalogue of phimotic ills' is extended in American textbooks to include other aspects of sexual erethisms' such as homosexuality.
ellauri180.html on line 200: The turn of the 19th century was also an important time in laying the foundations of surgical technique. Sir Frederick Treves (1903) provides us with a comprehensive account of basic surgical princi
pl es that remain today. Like most of his contemporaries, he used scissors to remove the prepuce (fig. 5) and describes ligation of the frenular artery as being mandatory' in the adult. He also warns against the excess removal of skin, as this may lead to chordee.
ellauri180.html on line 222: `…Your patient C.D., aetat 7 months, has the prepuce with which he was born. You ask me with a note of persuasion in your voice, if it should be excised. Am I to make a decision on scientific grounds, or am I to acquiesce in a rate which took its origin at the behest of that arch-sanitarian Moses?…If you can show good reason why a ritual designed to ease the penalties of concupiscence amidst the sand and flies of the Syrian deserts should be continued in this England, land of clean bed-linen and lesser opportunity, I shall listen to your arguments ……(do you not) understand that Nature does not intend it (the foreskin) to be stretched and retracted in the Tem
pl es of the Welfare Centres or ritually removed in the precincts of the operating theatres…'.
ellauri180.html on line 224: Literary assaults such as these have served to fuel the debates and even a Medline® search today reveals that in the last year alone, 155 reviews or letters have been published arguing for or against routine circumcision. However, studying the evolution of the medical indications provides us with a
pl easing demonstration of how controversy drives scientific enquiry. We have already described how the surgeons of 100 years ago advocated circumcision for a wide variety of conditions, such as impotence, nocturnal enuresis, sterility, excess masturbation, night terrors, epilepsy, etc. There can be no doubt that a large element of surgical self-interest drove these claims. However, most of the contemporary textbooks also included epithelioma (carcinoma) of the penis amidst the morass of com
pl ications of phimosis. Although rare, once this observation had been made, it presumably filtered down through the textbooks by rote, rather than scientific study. A few reports had appeared in the early 20th century indicating that carcinoma of the penis was rare in circumcised men, but not until the debate over neonatal circumcision erupted in the medical press in the 1930s that this surgical `mantra' was put to the test. In 1932, the editor of the Lancet challenged Abraham Wolbarst, a New York urologist, to prove his contention (in a previous Lancet editorial), that circumcision prevented penile carcinoma. Wolbarst responded by surveying every skin, cancer and Jewish hospital in the USA, along with 1250 of the largest general hospitals throughout the Union. With this survey, he was able to show that penile cancer virtually never occurred in circumcised men and that the risk related to the timing of the circumcision. Over the years this association has been reaffirmed by many research workers, although general hygiene, demographic and other factors such as human papilloma virus and smoking status are probably just as important. However, Wolbarst established that association through formal scientific enquiry and proponents of the procedure continue to use this as a compelling argument for circumcision at birth.
ellauri180.html on line 230: Finally, controversy has arisen over who should perform the procedure. Once circumcision had been medicalized' in the 19th century, many surgeons were keen to take paying customers away from the religious men. As such, doctors were often quick to highlight the unforseen risks attendant on a non-medical procedure. For instance, Cabot (1924) described tuberculosis of the penis occurring when Rabbis with infected sputum sucked on the baby's penis to stop the bleeding. However, it has often been claimed that the incidence of com
pl ications in Jewish children is very low and that the final result is usually better than any hospital doctor can produce.
ellauri180.html on line 262: How on earth do you write a sub
pl ot?
ellauri180.html on line 264: I write more and, arguably, write BETTER when I know as LITTLE about the
pl ot & characters story as possible (ie pantsing), but I'm uncomfortable with the prospect of pantsing an entire fcking novel...?
ellauri180.html on line 270: When a rejection says “
pl ease submit again,” do they mean it?
ellauri180.html on line 284: How do you ex
pl ain the obvious?
ellauri180.html on line 299: For the longest time, I didn’t think that white authors should write non-white characters. I had seen it done badly (as my previous article about Sarah J. Maas ex
pl ains) and offensively (think J. K. Rowling with Cho Chang and the Patil twins).
ellauri180.html on line 300: One study found in 2018 that (of the books in the sam
pl e), although non-Hispanic white peo
pl e account for 60 percent of the U.S. population, they wrote 89 percent of the books. 40 percent of their characters most definitely aren't POC or Latino.
ellauri180.html on line 302: There are numerous courses of action that could help to lessen the everyday burden of white supremacy. Reading books with characters that look and feel like Ernest Hemingway is not a good
pl ace to start.
ellauri180.html on line 304: If James Cameron had spent some time reading things written by Native peo
pl e about Pocahontas and what that storyline means to their peo
pl e and how offensive and damaging the sexualization of native women is, he might have reconsidered that romantic sub
pl ot. If he had started to read and then balked at all the vicious hatred and anger, it is as if he never even tried.
ellauri180.html on line 308:
ploads/2014/01/pendragon-1.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri180.html on line 343: When in doubt, write from a
pl ace of shared understanding. ...
ellauri180.html on line 373: These worlds inspire us with new sensations and experiences, with quoting C.S. Lewis 'such beauty, awe, or terror as the actual world does not sup
pl y', with the stuff of desires, dreams, and dread.
ellauri180.html on line 375: Robert "Bobby" Pendragon is an everyday athletic junior high school student from (fictional) Stony Brook, Connecticut, located in the greater New York metropolitan area. Bobby is a prisoner of color. Oops sorry my bad he's not, rather he looks a lot like Harry Potter without the spectacles. But his date Lori (whatever) is a WOC. Bobby's Uncle Stop Press reveals that he will train Bobby to become one of the "Travelers": asshole-journeying young warriors from a variety of different
pl anets and cultures. Great Dane threatens to mix them all together like a kid with watercolors until they are all the same shade of shit.
ellauri180.html on line 399: And called me. When no voice re
pl ied, Ja kuzui mua heti uusintaan.
ellauri180.html on line 402: And all her yellow hair dis
pl aced, yhden paikan keltaisine karvoineen,
ellauri180.html on line 447: In summary: a man speaks to some unidentified (and possibly imaginary) auditor, telling us how, on a dark and stormy (or rainy and windy) night, he waited in his cottage for his lover, Porphyria, to arrive. When she turns up, it’s clear Porphyria is of a higher social class than the male speaker: he’s punching above his weight, as they say. Note how she glides in as if she owns the
pl ace, and as if she walks on air rather than on the ground like us mere mortals. She wears a hat, cloak, and shawl, and her gloves are soiled, suggesting that they are not used to slumming it in a common man’s cottage and attending to his fire and grate. The fact that she also takes the lead – suggesting she is perhaps used to ordering servants to do her bidding – further hints at her highborn status: she calls to the speaker, and she takes his arm and puts it around her waist. Then, the clincher (in more ways than one): we are told "she Too weak, for all her heart’s endeavour,
ellauri180.html on line 538: The dying embers of an altar-
pl ace Jonkun alttarin kekäleiden edessä,
ellauri180.html on line 569: Namely a prediction for what will happen to the
pl anet if the human race does not change (for the better).
ellauri180.html on line 573: All of the peo
pl e of the earth have been doomed to live in darkness. They burn everything around them, from palaces to huts and eventually religious materials. They are desperate for any kind of light to see by.
ellauri180.html on line 581: Some "men" smile into their hands in intense cynicism for what is happening. Peo
pl e seem frustrated.
ellauri180.html on line 589: This act of seeking to find comfort in the burnt remains of religious, or at least holy (privately owned), texts, objects, or structures, after having destroyed them fits into the narrative of this sinful world being reduced to darkness. God (not mentioned) has tested these peo
pl e and they have failed, only returning to religion when they are at their most desperate. That's an F.
ellauri181.html on line 33:
PENIS DE MONO play:none">Hominointia
ellauri181.html on line 43: Oliko se sit Ivan Klima? His friend Philip Roth once described him, with his "Beatle haircut" and "carnivorous teeth" as "a much more intellectually evolved Ringo Starr". Ei kuulosta ihan tältäkään. Ivan Klima says "There are some differences between a dictatorship which is strong and one which is tired. By the late Eighties ours was a tired dictatorship. They were no longer killing peo
pl e and they made every effort not to arrest peo
pl e. In this condition of a dictatorship you could find your own freedom. You could not become rich, you could not travel except maybe to Hungary, but you could write." Olipa paha ettei voinut rikastua eikä lennellä ympäriinsä. Ja saihan sitä kirjoittaa, kuha ei julkaissut.
ellauri181.html on line 126: This article has multi
pl e issues. Please help improve it or discuss these issues on the talk page.
ellauri181.html on line 132: The Theory of Basic Human Values is a theory of cross-cultural psychology and universal values that was developed by a guy called Shalom H. Schwartz. The theory extends previous cross-cultural communication frameworx such as Hofstede's cultural dimensions theory. Schwartz identifies ten basic human values, each distinguished by their underlying motivation or goal, and he ex
pl ains how peo
pl e in all cultures recognize them. There are two major methods for measuring these ten basic values: the Schwartz Value Survey and the Portrait Values Questionnaire. A particular value can conflict or align with other values, and these dynamic relationships are typically illustrated using a circular graphic in which opposite poles indicate conflicting values.
ellauri181.html on line 134: One of the main limitations of this theory lies in the methodology of the research. The SVS is quite difficult to answer, because respondenz have to first read the set of 30 value items and give one value the highest as well as the lowest ranking (0 or −1, depending on whether an item is opposed to their values). Hence, com
pl eting one questionnaire takes approximately 12 minutes resulting in a significant amount of only half-filled in forms. Furthermore, many respondenz have a tendency to give the majority of the values a high score, resulting in a skewed responses to the upper end. However, this issue can be mitigated by providing respondenz with an additional filter to evaluate the items they marked with high scores. When administering the Schwartz Value Survey in a coaching setting, respondenz are coached to distinguish between a "must-have" value and a "meaningful" value. A "must-have" value is a value you have acted on or thought about in the previous 24 hours (this value item would receive a score of 6 or 7 on the Schwartz scale). A "meaningful" value is something you have acted on or thought about recently, but not in the previous 24 hours (this value item would receive a score of 5 or less).
ellauri181.html on line 138:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/d/db/Theory_of_Basic_Human_Values_Graphic.jpg">
ellauri181.html on line 141: In a 2012 article, Schwartz and colleagues refined the Theory of Basic Values with an extended set of 19 individual values that serve as "guiding princi
pl es in the life of a person or group".
ellauri181.html on line 146: After com
pl eting his master's degree in social psychology and group development at Columbia University and com
pl eting his rabbinical studies, Schwartz received his Ph.D. in social psychology from the University of Michigan, and subsequently taught in the sociology department of the University of Wisconsin–Madison, and in 1973 became a professor. From 1971-73, Schwartz was a visiting lecturer in the department of psychology at the Hebrew University. In 1979, Schwartz moved to Israel with his wife and three children. He joined the department of psychology at the Hebrew University, where he holds the post of Leon and Clara Sznajderman Professor Emeritus of Psychology. He is now retired, but continues his research activity, as well as developing and promoting his Basic Human Values Theory.
ellauri181.html on line 152:
Schwartzin arvoteoria Australian integraatio-ja impl ementaatioyliopistista
ellauri181.html on line 154: Purpose: To identify personal values that are robust across cultures and that can help ex
pl ain diversity and conflict in values.
ellauri181.html on line 166: “Values serve as standards or criteria. Values guide the selection or evaluation of actions, policies, peo
pl e, and evenz. Peo
pl e decide what is good or bad, justified or illegitimate, worth doing or avoiding, based on possible consequences for their cherished values. But the impact of values in everyday decisions is rarely conscious. Values enter awareness when the actions or judgmenz one is considering have conflicting im
pl ications for different values one cherishes.”
ellauri181.html on line 168: “Values are ordered by importance relative to one another. Peo
pl e’s values form an ordered system of priorities that characterize them as individuals.”
ellauri181.html on line 170: “The relative importance of multi
pl e values guides action. Any attitude or behaviour typically has im
pl ications for more than one value. … The tradeoff among relevant, competing values guides attitudes and behaviors… Values influence action when they are relevant in the context (hence likely to be activated) and important to the actor.”
ellauri181.html on line 185: “Self-Direction – Defining goal: independent thought and action–choosing, creating, ex
pl oring.”
ellauri181.html on line 189: “Hedonism – Defining goal:
pl easure or sensuous gratification for oneself.”
ellauri181.html on line 193: “Power – Defining goal: social status and prestige, control or dominance over peo
pl e and resources.”
ellauri181.html on line 203: “Universalism – Defining goal: understanding, appreciation, tolerance, and protection for the welfare of all peo
pl e and for nature.”
ellauri181.html on line 208: Relations among these 10 broad personal values are dynamic. Actions pursuing one value “have consequences that conflict with some values but are congruent with others.” This has “practical, psychological, and social consequences.” “Of course, peo
pl e can and do pursue competing values, but not in a single act. Rather, they do so through different acz, at different times, and in different settings.”
ellauri181.html on line 225: Hedonism and Stimulation—a desire for affectively
pl easant arousal;
ellauri181.html on line 370:
ipsative (not comparable) (psychology) Denoting a measure that forces an individual to choose among multi
pl e false options. Myers-Briggs uses ipsative measures, whereas the Five-Factor Model uses normative measures.
ellauri181.html on line 376: While mean scores from Likert-type scales can be compared across individuals, scores from an ipsative measure cannot. To ex
pl ain, if an individual was equally extroverted and conscientious and was assessed on a Likert-type scale, each trait would be evaluated singularly, i.e. respondents would see the item "I enjoy parties" and agree or disagree with it to whatever degree reflected their preferences.[citation needed]
ellauri181.html on line 382: Additionally, ipsative measures may be useful in identifying faking. However, ipsative measures may, especially among testing-naïve individuals exhibiting high levels of conscientiousness and/or neuroticism, decrease test validity by discouraging response and/or encouraging non-response. For exam
pl e, a test's authors may force respondents to choose between "a) Animals chase me in my dreams" and "b) My dreams are nice" in an effort to see whether a given respondent is more inclined toward "faking bad" or toward "faking good." When faced with such a question, a child frequently terrified by nightmares that rarely if ever involve animals, and especially one whose parents have foolishly taught him/her/it strict rules against lying, may sim
pl y refuse to answer the question given that for that respondent nearly all of the time both descriptions are inaccurate. Even a previously presented guideline "Choose the answer that [best/better] describes you" may be unhelpful in such a situation to responders who worry that endorsing one item or the other will still involve stating it to be accurate or "well"-descriptive to some positive degree. Only if the guideline is presented as "Choose the answer that more accurately or less inaccurately describes you" and the above-described responder is sophisticated enough to reason out his/her response in terms of "Despite the infrequency with which I have nice dreams, I have them [more frequently / less infrequently] than dreams in which animals chase me" (or, in theory, vice versa) will such a responder be willing to answer the question—and phrasing the guideline in this way bears its own cost of making the question reveal less about the respondent's propensities because the respondent is no longer forced to "fake" one way or another.[citation needed].
ellauri181.html on line 412: 1950- ja 1960-lukujen taiteessa tohtori Thomas Hendrickson kehitti psykologian tohtori William Moulton Marstonin tutkimusteorian ”Emotions of Normal Peo
pl e” pohjalta Henkilökohtaisen Profiilin Analyysin eli Thomas HPA:n (Thomas Personal Profile Analysis (PPA). Thomas HPA on ipsatiivinen eli pakkovalintatesti, joka kattavasti selvittää henkilön työkäyttäytymistä eri tilanteissa. Sen avulla voidaan nopeasti ja luotettavasti saada kattavaa tietoa esim. henkilön johtamisen, rekrytoinnin tai kehittämisen tueksi. Sitä kuzutaan Thomasixi koska Thomas on nasevampi kuin joku Hendrickson. Hendrickson ja Kitula souteli vanhalla vitulla. Kyrpä oli airona ja munat peräpainona. Tuomas työnsi epäilevän sormen Jee-suxen uuteen reikään.
ellauri181.html on line 424: Myöntyvyys (Com
pl iance).
ellauri181.html on line 545: How can we speak of alignment and the potential for mismatch stress without addressing the issues of ethics, virtues and values? We were shocked in the first few years of the 21st century to discover that the global companies that we had trusted, and invested our retirement and life savings with had lied to us. They lied to the public, about earnings. They lied about their value and their investmenz. Many thousands of peo
pl e lost their life savings. Hundreds of thousands had been duped. Millions had been take advantage of!
ellauri181.html on line 547: How could it happen? How could those we had
pl aced in a position of trust have failed us so seriously? It is a question of ethics. It is a question of virtues. It is a question of values.
ellauri181.html on line 549: Ben Franklin is an excellent exam
pl e of a man who defined his virtues and values and aspired to live by them.
ellauri181.html on line 554: *Franklin Covey Co., trading as FranklinCovey and based in Salt Lake City, Utah, is a provider of leadership, individual effectiveness, and business execution training and assessment services for organizations and individuals. The company was formed on May 30, 1997, as a result of merger between Hyrum W. Smith's Franklin Quest and
Stephen R. Covey 's Covey Leadership Center. Among other producz, the company has marketed the FranklinCovey
pl anning system, modeled in part on the writings of Benjamin Franklin, and The 7 Habiz of Highly Effective Peo
pl e, based on Covey's research into leadership ethics.
ellauri181.html on line 556: Benjamin Franklin was an author, a painter, an inventor, a father, a politician, and the first American Ambassador to France. He invented bifocals, swim flippers, lightening rods, and the Franklin stove. He founded a public library, a hospital, and insurance company and a fire department. He helped write the Declaration of Independence and the U.S. Constitution. He wrote an autobiography in the middle of his life and shortly before his death in his 80's, he com
pl eted his memoirs. Franklin was truly a Renaissance man. He was one of the greatest citizens and thinkers the world has ever seen. But Franklin was not always a great or successful man. At the age of 17 he ran away from home in Boston, estranged from his family because of an argument he had with his brother.
ellauri181.html on line 577: When he com
pl eted his list of the virtues to which he aspired, Franklin wrote a brief sentence describing each of the virtues and what it meant to him. He did not want there to be any confusion about what each of these words meant. His definitions of his virtues then looked like this.....
ellauri181.html on line 583:
. Order - Let all your things have their pl aces; let each part of your business have iz time.
ellauri181.html on line 586: . Industry - Lose no time; be always empl oyed in something useful; cut off all unnecessary actions.
ellauri181.html on line 595: Franklin then took his list to a respected friend who happened to be a Quaker. Franklin expl ained to his Quaker friend that he, Franklin, was disappointed in the progress in his life to this point and that he intended to turn his life around. From now on Franklin intended to live his life according to his list of virtues. Each day he would read the list and each week he would focus on a different virtue. Repeating the process over and over again until he had become one with his virtues.
ellauri181.html on line 598: Franklin expl ained that he was indeed serious and that he knew he was far from these virtues now. But he aspired to become one with the twelve virtues he had listed and described. His Quaker friend went on then to say. "Ben, if you are serious you need to add a thirteenth virtue. Humility. Because you don't have any."
ellauri181.html on line 610: The rest is history. Franklin went on to become one of the most productive, successful and self- actualized peopl e in all of history. He knew what mattered most. That was how he could set about being an author, a printer, an inventor, a father, a politician, the first American Ambassador to France, the inventor of bifocals, swim flippers, lightening rods, hundreds of other things and the Franklin stove and how he could found a public library, a hospital, an insurance company and a fire company and help to write the Declaration of Independence and the Constitution.
ellauri181.html on line 612: But did you know that is not the end of the story? In his memoirs, shortly before his death Franklin was reflecting on the story of his virtues (which he told in his autobiography written mid-life) and he noted that he had come to feel a oneness with each of his 12 virtues. When he thought of the 13th virtue, he realized that he simpl y was not humble. Franklin had failed at his 13th virtue.
ellauri181.html on line 616: Franklin failed at the 13th virtue, Humility. Why? Was the most difficult virtue on this list the last? Or was there another reason? YES! The answer is obvious and simpl e. Franklin had not failed at his virtues. He had succeeded at each of his twelve virtues. He failed at a virtue that was not his, a virtue that had been given to him by someone else. Franklin failed at a virtue that he did not value. He failed at doing something someone else valued and suggested to him as a value.
ellauri181.html on line 618: How then might we learn from Franklin's exampl e? Yes, can we learn that we should only be bothered with what matters most to us. Yes! Perhaps the single most important lesson in life would be that we must learn what matters most to us! A lesson to you oversears teachers: model what you would teach, because you teach first by modeling. Teach what you would live but remember the failure of Ben's Quaker friend. It is not possible to give someone a value they would not own.
ellauri181.html on line 620: Note Franklin's is just a list of virtues. He did not need t spell out the value impl icit in them. It is the same as held in highest esteem by Scrooge McDuck, who lived up to Franklin's virtues: MONEY! Money money money, money makes the world go around. Megabucx, greenbacx, cash, capital gain and assez.
ellauri182.html on line 32: Banana Spl it
ellauri182.html on line 33: Food as a Value play:none">Japonais-täytettä
ellauri182.html on line 34: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/a9/Jodo_shinshu_buddhism_seven_masters_scroll.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri182.html on line 41: In the face of death and loneliness, Mikage searches for meaning in her life. She tries to overcome the “leaden hopelessness” that pl agues her. Mikage “can’t believe in the gods,” and thus does not have the religion that gives many peopl e meaning in life. Instead, she looks to the other characters and to herself for meaning. Eriko is a model of strength and gives Mikage advice on how to handle despair and the loss of meaning. Yuichi gives meaning to Mikage in the form of relationship, of having someone to cook for.
ellauri182.html on line 57: Banana spl it
ellauri182.html on line 64: Hän valmistui Nihon Yliopiston taidelinjalta pääaineenaan kirjallisuus. Noihin aikoihin hän otti taiteilijanimekseen ”Banana”, koska hän piti banaaneista. Yoshimoto aloitti uransa työskennellessään rolf-kerhon ravintolassa tarjoilijana vuonna 1987. Hänen innoittajiaan olivat Stephen Kingin muut kuin kauhuteokset (2kpl ). Myöhemmin hän on nimennyt esikuvikseen kirjailijat Truman Capoten sekä Isaac Bashevis Singerin.
ellauri182.html on line 70: Yoshimoto became an overnight celebrity in the media and “Bananamania” swept Japan and its youth culture. All this took pl ace in the late eighties.
ellauri182.html on line 82: Mikage is not religious, but believes in elements of the mystical and superstitious. She “can’t believe in the gods,” but for a warm bed, she “thanked the gods—whether they existed or not.” In despair, she “impl ored the gods: Please, let me live.” She also has a dream that comes partially true. Ergo Mikage relates to American culture. She looks up to Eriko as an ideal of feminine beauty, charm, and strength, although Eriko was once, or still is, a man - or is s/he?
ellauri182.html on line 87: The second part of the story begins with a shock: Eriko died in the autumn. A man at his/her club has stalked and killed him/xsher in a hate crime. Later that night, alone, Mikage recalls a conversation she had with Eriko, during which Eriko expl ained why s/he became a woman.
ellauri182.html on line 98: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri182.html on line 104: Symbolism appears throughout Yoshimoto’s story. For the protagonist, kitchens symbolize pl aces of contentment, safety, and healing. Mikage claims, “to me a kitchen represents some distant longing engraved on my soul.” When she is despondent, her dreams of kitchens keep her going. She takes to the kitchen and learns cooking as a way of overcoming feelings of meaninglessness and despair; cooking represents her new attitude toward life. Like kitchens and cooking, food also pl ays a symbolic role in the story. Mikage is constantly presenting her friends with food; her life changes when she takes a job at a cooking school; and the climax of the story occurs when Mikage brings a dish of special food to Yuichi in his secluded hotel room. Eat my shorz.
ellauri182.html on line 106: Mikage’s voice can be compl ex as well, which keeps the reader intellectually engaged. She can go from the light and ironic, talking casually about herself and her situation, to the literary and compl ex, making more formal and generalized statements, such as this musing on fate that begins: “We all believe we can choose our own path from among the many.”
ellauri182.html on line 113: The Marshall Plan brought Western ideas and a free market economy to what had been an old and traditional culture. in the mid-1980s, Japan has a booming industrial economy, bolstered by its exports of automobiles and electronics to the West. Japanese society has become more materialistic than ever, influenced by its wealth and the consumerism imported from America. Mikage acknowledges this consumerism when she says of her friends, “these peopl e had a taste for buying new things that verged on the unhealthy.” Mikage’s generation has been brought up on television and American culture; she mentions an American sitcom and Disneyland in her narrative. One character in the story is wearing “what is practically the national costume, a two-piece warmup suit,” a style imported from America. In Japan, Yoshimoto’s generation is called the shinjinrui, a generation that has grown up in a wealthy, technological society exposed to American values. Shinjinrui was new breed of humans (used to refer to the post-war generation, who have different ideals and sensibilities). Japan's Generation X.
ellauri182.html on line 115: Some reviewers thought Kitchen was superficial in style and substance, and overly sentimental. Todd Grimson in the Los Angeles Times Book Review wrote that, ‘“Kitchen’ is light as an invisible pancake, charming and forgettable ... The release of information to the reader seems unskilled, or immature, weak in narrative or pl ot.” Elizabeth Hanson of the New York Times Book Review took issue with the overall effect of the book, writing that “the endearing characters and amusing scenes in Ms. Yoshimoto’s work do not compensate for frequent bouts of sentimentality.” Hanson added that the book’s main appeal for English-language readers “lies in its portrayal of the lives of young Japanese who are more into food and death than sex. EAT! KILL! but do not FUCK!".
ellauri182.html on line 123: Quoting Zen master Dogen-zenji’s “Instructions for the Zen Cook,” (circa 1237), Ashburne relays the words of the great Zen master on the simpl e act of washing rice and cooking it. Dogen-zenji states, “Keep your eyes open. Do not allow even one grain of rice to be lost. Wash the rice thoroughly, put it in the pot, light the fire and cook it.” He then adds, “There is an old saying that goes, ‘see the pot as your own head; see the water as your life-blood.’” Vittu et on anaalia puuhastelua ruuan kanssa. Ei ruualla saa leikkiä. Se on jumalan viljaa.
ellauri182.html on line 127: Mikage states, “I can’t believe in the gods,” but at the same time she admits her confusion when she impl ores the “gods—whether they existed or not,” to “pl ease let me live.” Mikage does not have a solid religious belief system to provide meaning for her life, so she turns to other sources for meaning, including friends and her own inward search. Wrong! !No es eso! !No es eso! You should turn to Amitabha!
ellauri182.html on line 129: Existential heroes in literature have often been pl agued with despair and profound loneliness. Another philosopher that existentialists have turned to is Søren Kierkegaard (1813-1855), who called this despair “the sickness unto death.”
ellauri182.html on line 130: Sartre urged the personal freedom of choice in the face of life’s unknowns, and claimed that seizing freedom was each person’s duty. These ideas of free will and personal responsibility are also introduced in “Kitchen.” Mikage makes the statement: “Peopl e aren’t overcome by situations or outside forces; defeat invades from within,” when she begins to realize that she has responsibility for her own life and its pain. Other peopl e can no longer help her; she must take charge of things herself, “with or without” Yuichi.
ellauri182.html on line 133: Toward the climax of the story, when Mikage is climbing a hotel balcony in a daring moment of “utter desperation,” she contempl ates the concept of free will. Up to this point in the story, Mikage has tended to believe in fate and in premonitions, which are beliefs that other powers are making decisions for her. She has also stated that “we have so little choice,” and that “we live like the lowliest worms.” Undergoing an existential change, Mikage finally admits to herself and the reader that human beings are ultimately free because “we’re constantly making choices. With the breaths we take every day, with the expression in our eyes, with the daily actions we do over and over, we decide.” She states that even when peopl e think that they are being acted upon by outside forces, they are in reality choosing their situations and actions, sometimes subconsciously.
ellauri182.html on line 167: Shinran left Mount Hiei to study under Hōnen for the next six years. Hōnen (1133–1212) another ex-Tendai monk, left the tradition in 1175 to found his own sect, the Jōdo-shū or "Pure Land School". From that time on, Shinran considered himself, even after exile, a devout discipl e of Hōnen rather than a founder establishing his own, distinct True Pure Land school.
ellauri182.html on line 171: During this period, Hōnen taught the new nembutsu-only practice to many peopl e in Kyoto society and amassed a substantial following but also came under increasing criticism by the Buddhist establishment there. Among his strongest critics was the monk Myōe and the templ es of Enryaku-ji and Kōfuku-ji. The latter continued to criticize Hōnen and his followers even after they pl edged to behave with good conduct and to not slander other Buddhists.
ellauri182.html on line 173: In 1207, Hōnen's critics at Kōfuku-ji persuaded Emperor Toba II to forbid Hōnen and his teachings after two of Imperial ladies-in-waiting converted to his practices. Hōnen and his followers, among them Shinran, were forced into exile and four of Hōnen's discipl es were executed. Shinran was given a lay name, Yoshizane Fujii, by the authorities but called himself Gutoku "Stubble-headed One (nukkapää)" instead and moved to Echigo Province (today Niigata Prefecture).
ellauri182.html on line 176: Some of Shinran's discipl es founded their own schools of Shin Buddhism, such as the Bukkaku and Kosovo, in Kyoto. Early Shin Buddhism did not truly flourish until the time of Rennyo (1415–1499), who was 8th in descent from Shinran. Through his charisma and proselytizing, Shin Buddhism was able to amass a greater following and grow in strength.
ellauri182.html on line 178: Rennyo is generally credited by Shin Buddhists for reversing the stagnation of the early Jōdo Shinshū community, and is considered the "Second Founder" of Jōdo Shinshū. His portrait picture, along with Shinran's, are present on the onanizing (altar) area of most Jōdo Shinshū templ es. However, Rennyo has also been criticized by some Shin scholars for his engagement in medieval politics and his alleged divergences from Shinran's original thought.
ellauri182.html on line 187: As in other Pure Land Buddhist schools, Amitābha is a central focus of the Buddhist practice, and Jōdo Shinshū expresses this devotion through a chanting practice called nembutsu, or "Mindfulness of the Buddha [Amida]". The nembutsu is simpl y reciting the phrase Namu Amida Butsu ("I take refuge in Amitābha Buddha"). Jōdo Shinshū is not the first school of Buddhism to practice the nembutsu but it is interpreted in a new way according to Shinran. The nembutsu becomes understood as an act that expresses gratitude to Amitābha; furthermore, it is evoked in the practitioner through the power of Amida's unobstructed compassion. Therefore, in Shin Buddhism, the nembutsu is not considered a practice, nor does it generate karmic merit. It is simpl y an affirmation of one's gratitude. Indeed, given that the nembutsu is the Name, when one utters the Name, that is Amitābha calling to the devotee. This is the essence of the Name-that-calls.[7]
ellauri182.html on line 193: The goal of the Shin path, or at least the practicer's present life, is the attainment of shinjin in the Other Power of Amida. Shinjin is sometimes translated as "faith", but this does not capture the nuances of the term and it is more often simpl y left untranslated.[8] The receipt of shinjin comes about through the renunciation of self-effort in attaining enlightenment through tariki. Shinjin arises from jinen (自然 naturalness, spontaneous working of the Vow) and cannot be achieved solely through conscious effort. One is letting go of conscious effort in a sense, and simpl y trusting Amida Buddha, and the nembutsu.
ellauri182.html on line 195: For Jōdo Shinshū practitioners, shinjin develops over time through "deep hearing" (monpo) of Amitābha's call of the nembutsu. According to Shinran, "to hear" means "that sentient beings, having heard how the Buddha's Vow arose—its origin and fulfillment—are altogether free of doubt."[9] Jinen also describes the way of naturalness whereby Amitābha's infinite light illumines and transforms the deepl y rooted karmic evil of countless rebirths into good karma. It is of note that such evil karma is not destroyed but rather transformed: Shin stays within the Mahayana tradition's understanding of śūnyatā and understands that samsara and nirvana are not separate. Once the practitioner's mind is united with Amitābha and Buddha-nature gifted to the practitioner through shinjin, the practitioner attains the state of non-retrogression, whereupon after his death it is claimed he will achieve instantaneous and effortless enlightenment. He will then return to the world as a Bodhisattva, that he may work towards the salvation of all beings.
ellauri182.html on line 209: Cross-national epidemiological studies show that prevalence rates of common mental disorders (i.e. depression, anxiety disorders, and post traumatic ressi) vary considerably between countries, suggesting cultural differences. In order to gather evidence on how culture relates to the aetiology and phenomenology of mental disorders, finding meaningful empirical instruments for capturing the latent (i.e. non-visible) construct of 'culture' is vital. In this review, we suggest using value orientations for this purpose. We focus on Schwartz's value theory, which includes two levels of values: cultural and personal. We identified nine studies on personal values and four studies on cultural values and their relationship with common mental disorders. This relationship was assessed among very heterogeneous cultural groups; however, no consistent correlational pattern occurred. The most compelling evidence suggests that the relationship between personal values and mental disorders is moderated by the cultural context. Hence, assessing mere correlations between personal value orientations and self-reported symptoms of psychopathology, without taking into account the cultural context, does not yield meaningful results. This theoretical review reveals important research gaps: Most studies aimed to expl ain how values relate to the aetiology of mental disorders, whereas the question of phenomenology was largely neglected. Moreover, all included studies used Western instruments for assessing mental disorders, which may not capture culturally-specific phenomena of mental distress. Finding systematic relationships between values and mental disorders may contribute to making more informed hypotheses about how psychopathology is expressed under different cultural circumstances, and how to culturally adapt psychological interventions.
ellauri182.html on line 248: Talking about one’s problems can be a great way to get something off your chest. While it is okay to admit that you’re having a hard time, as with other “negative” topics, try to not come across as someone who’s just compl aining all the time without actually trying to change anything. Girls don't spread legs for whiners.
ellauri182.html on line 269: Ei kaveri, näillä aiheilla et hevin pääse hilloviivalle, varoittelee David Morin, minkä myös scientific reviewer, tupl abaccalaureus Viktor Sander päätä pyörittäen vahvistaa. Impotenssi näytti puuttuvan keskustelunaiheista. Se kuuluisi ehkä tohon vihon viimeiseen aiheryhmään.
ellauri182.html on line 274: 1.2 Geography and pl aces
ellauri182.html on line 279: 1.7 Peopl e and self
ellauri182.html on line 283: 1.11 Technology and appl ied sciences
ellauri182.html on line 320: Humans displ ay these facial expressions as 'subconscious calls for help'.
ellauri182.html on line 324: Scientists from the University of Plymouth studied the faces of children and chimpanzees as they compl eted a series of unsolvable tasks.
ellauri182.html on line 328: Meanwhile, the chimpanzees did not show signs of effort - despite failing to compl ete the tasks. Well at least the baboons don't.
ellauri182.html on line 334: ploads/2014/05/4327755105124.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri182.html on line 349: same appl ies to a [g] before the central-front diphthong [aei] in gai "guy"
ellauri182.html on line 362: repl aced with the voiced fricative [v] as e.g. in the frequent exclamation vá "wow".
ellauri182.html on line 364: If we look at the exampl es already mentioned, most of them are neuter,
ellauri182.html on line 365: i.e. bridds, djobb, djók, geim, gel, gin, and sjó. Other exampl es are breik "break", bœti "byte", dóp "dope", greip "grapefruit", lúkk "look", meik "make-up", meil "e-mail", sjampó "shampoo", sjeik "(milk)shake", and teip "tape".
ellauri182.html on line 368: and accusative pl ural {girs — girar), e.g. gir, djass, djús, sjans/séns, tjakkur,
ellauri182.html on line 372: nominative and accusative pl ural ijeppa — jeppar), as e.g. gai, hamborgari
ellauri182.html on line 373: "hamburger", jeppi "jeep", maskari "mascara", pl ebbi from "pl ebeian =
ellauri182.html on line 375: Very few feminine anglicisms have strong declension. As an exampl e the
ellauri182.html on line 378: pl ural (blókar— blœkur). Words ending in -ik, like grafik "graphic", lýrik "lyric", politik "politics", trafftk "traffic" get the ending -ur in genitive singular, but no pl ural, and words with the suffix -sjón, as e.g. aksjón "action", have the endings -ar in genitive singular and -ir in nominative and accusative pl ural (aksjónar—aksjónir). As -sjón is not accepted as an Icelandic suffix, aksjón counts as a foreign word, but not as a loanword. [Silly bitch, it is a Danish loan put to new use.]
ellauri182.html on line 381: ending -u in genitive singular and -ur in nominative and accusative pl ural
ellauri182.html on line 382: (pœju—pæjur), for exampl e disketta "diskette", paja "(sweetie) pie", skrifia
ellauri182.html on line 398: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri182.html on line 419: The Zen circle is a simpl e, stark black circle usually painted on white paper in ink. Typically the circle is said to represent the material world that continues endlessly without cessation. There is a beginning to life (where the brush first touches the paper) and an end (where the brush leaves the paper), but this beginning and end continue one after the other, thereby signifying the wheel of birth, death and rebirth. The space within that circle is the emptiness, or the void, the understanding of which lies at the heart of Zen and the experience of which is the goal of meditation.
ellauri182.html on line 425: First simpl y draw a circle on the paper. It doesn't have to be very 'good' from an artistic point of view and an approximation is adequate.
ellauri182.html on line 443: What is inside is outside; what is outside is inside. Think about a Möbius strip, or a Klein bottle. No way for a fart to stay inside. As within, so without. This ancient wisdom is as appl icable today as it was centuries ago. Make a positive change within yourself and see that positivity reflected back at you by the peopl e around you and the circumstances you find yourself in.
ellauri182.html on line 445: Finally take the time to meditate on the meaning of the Zen circle in a fuller sense and how its secret appl ies to your life. I have only scratched the surface here; there is so much more to discover and share.
ellauri183.html on line 33: God's Grace play:none">Jumalanpilkkaa
ellauri183.html on line 50: Malamuutti piti leffoista ja kertoi kavereille niiden juonia. He was especially fond of Charlie Chapl in's comedies. Silläkin oli hullu veli Sakari. Malamud's mother, Bertha, and his brother, Eugene, were both mentally ill. Bertha died when Bernard was 15, possibly a suicide. Sakari eli kovan ja yxinäisen elämän ja kuoli viisikymppisenä.
ellauri183.html on line 55: agnostic : The English biologist Thomas Henry Huxley coined the word agnostic in 1869, and said "It simpl y means that a man shall not say he knows or believes that which he has no scientific grounds for professing to know or believe."
ellauri183.html on line 58: humanist : The word "humanism" derives from the Latin concept humanitas, which was first used by Cicero to describe values related to economic liberal education. The word disappeared for the dark middle ages and reappeared during the Italian Renaissance as umanista and reached the English language in the 16th century. The word "humanist" was used to describe a group of studenz of classical literature and those advocating for education based on it. In the early 19th century, the term Humanismus was used in Germany equivocally and it re-entered the English language second time anally. The more popular use signifying a non-religious approach to life, impl ying an antithesis to theism, viz. atheism.
ellauri183.html on line 80: Faulty interpretations can create much disappointment, as in the movie version of his novel The Fixer, "Horrible. That thing went to five different writers. Edward Albee was one of them but he would only do it if he had full say over it. Dalton Trumbo finally wrote the screen pl ay and he's a hack. The film should have been done as a sort of fable, in black and white. Instead, it was all galloping Cossacx and dancing girls: an overdone fake. And that sickens a writer--to see his book faked."
ellauri183.html on line 101: The apocalyptic gloom of his subject seems hopelessly out of pl ace in this cheery, sun-washed house, a rambling white-frame idyll near Bennington College, where Malamud has taught for 20 years. A comforting percussion of cooking sounds comes from the big kitchen where his wife Ann, a chipper dynamo of a woman, is devising lunch; on the porch an old tiger tomcat lolls ingratiatingly; and in the distance the cloud-dappl ed foothills of the Green Mountains hover like a Yankee daydream.
ellauri183.html on line 107: He forbade television in the house until the late '50s to encourage Paul and Janna to read. And he set an exampl e of "incredible and absolutely consistent discipl ine," reading every night in his slow, methodical way, underlining frequently. He doesn't prize material things all that highly, and the center of his life has always been his family and friends.
ellauri183.html on line 109: In Malamud's cosmology, free will and an omnipotent deity coexist because God ("who invented man to perfect himself") has an overall pl an "to make man meet his obligations, but in a way he can't tell him about in advance -- to make him use himself best."
ellauri183.html on line 111: Many critics dismiss Malamud as a "Jewish writer." But "that's a reduction of my accompl ishment. It diminishes something. All men are Jews, he once said, and Jews are absolutely the very stuff of drama. I say nothing about the ladies."
ellauri183.html on line 112: He is irritatingly compared to Nobel laureate Isaac Bashevis Singer. "Don't lump me in with Singer. We're very different. I don't go in for the schlemiel interpretation. There's a difference of intent. I am serious. I have not given up the hero -- I simpl y use heroic qualities in small men like myself. There ought to be more heroes like myself. Idealism has become a strange word."
ellauri183.html on line 134: Venezia kauppiaassa on joku Jessica. Niin se oli se juutalainen misu, Shylockin tytär. In the pl ay, she elopes with Lorenzo, a penniless Christian, and a chest of her father's money, eventually ending up in Portia and Bassanio's household. In the pl ay's dramatic structure, Jessica is a minor but pivotal role. Her actions motivate Shylock's vengeful insistence on his "pound of flesh" from Antonio; her relationships with Lorenzo and Shylock serves as a mirror and contrast to Portia's with Bassanio and with her father; her conversion to Christianity is the end of Shylock's line's adherence to the Jewish faith.
ellauri183.html on line 141: ploads/2014/11/Jessica3-769x1024.jpeg" />
ellauri183.html on line 151: Juutalainen möi arabille tissiliivejä satamäärin ylihinnalla. Juutalainen alkoi ihmetellä mihin se nin paljon tarvizi. Arabi paljasti: leikkaan ne kahtia ja myyn juutalaisille tupl ahintaan kipoina. Gottlob pölli Cohnin yarmulkan ja hukkasi sen viidakkoon.
ellauri183.html on line 162: Kierkegaard predicted that his 1843 work Fear and Trembling would be translated into many different languages, and would secure iz author's pl ace in history. He was right. But Fear and Trembling has also led to an enduring caricature of Kierkegaard as advocating a dangerously irrational and individualistic form of religious faith.
ellauri183.html on line 170: The dilemma is not unique to Abraham's situation. Kierkegaard was writing for 19th-century readers who regarded themselves as Christians – that is to say, as peopl e who believed in the authority and goodness of God. By emphasising the difficulty of understanding Abraham's response to the divine command, he emphasises the difficulty of faith izelf. Impl icit in his analysis of the story of Abraham is the question: would you do what Abraham did? How could you do such a thing? It seems unlikely that anyone who really thinx about these questions would conclude that he or she would have acted as Abraham did. Just as Abraham's faith is tested by God in the Book of Genesis, so the reader's own faith is tested by personal reflection on the biblical story.
ellauri183.html on line 172: Kierkegaard's point in Fear and Trembling is not to recommend blind faith in God, but to unsettle his readers' blind faith in themselves. That is to say, he seex to challenge their compl acent assumption that they are Christians. Only when this assumption was abandoned, he thought, could peopl e embark on the task of becoming a Christian.
ellauri183.html on line 177: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri183.html on line 182: In this text, the question of how to respond to the suffering associated with love and loss is closely connected to the question of how to live in relation to God. As many philosophers have pointed out – and as countless ordinary peopl e have experienced at first hand – human suffering presenz a great challenge to belief in a just, loving, all-powerful God. For Kierkegaard, the testing of Abraham accentuates this challenge, and Abraham provides inspiration precisely because he manages to hold together an apparently irreconcilable contradiction: he believes that the God who commands him to do what is most terrible and painful is also the God who loves him. Again, according to this interpretation, the story of Abraham only testifies to the extraordinary difficulty of religious faith.
ellauri183.html on line 186: Clare Carlisle studied philosophy and theology at Trinity College, Cambridge, gaining her BA in 1998 and her PhD in 2002, and she remains grateful to Trinity College for the scholarship that supported her doctoral studies. Her travels in India after compl eting her PhD deepened her interest in devotional and contempl ative practices. She is the author of six boox, most recently On Habit (Routledge, 2014), Philosopher of the Heart: The Restless Life of Søren Kierkegaard (Allen Lane / Penguin / FSG, 2019), and Spinoza’s Religion: A New Reading of the Ethics (Princeton University Press, 2021).
ellauri183.html on line 192: Is stealing from a small shop worse than from a chain? Clare Carlisle's moral QA column in Guardian. God's Lamb's report emphasises the severity of property crime, highlighting research by the Policy Exchange thinktank which found that half of burglary victims do not hear back from police after reporting the crime! By moral absolutism, shopl ifting and burglary are both absolutely wrong, and equally as bad as fornication or murder.
ellauri183.html on line 194: Moral absolutism is certainly compatible with an acknowledgement that monetary value depends on circumstance. Jesus, for exampl e, reinforced the 10 commandmenz, which unconditionally prohibit murder, adultery, theft and so on. But one day, when he was teaching in the templ e, Jesus watched a poor widow put two small coins in the donation box, while rich peopl e made much larger offerings. “This poor widow has put in more than all of them,” says Jesus, “because she, out of her poverty, has put in all she had to live on.” But by the criterion of moral absolutism they were just the same.
ellauri183.html on line 244: El advenimiento de las masas al pl eno poder social es un hecho que debemos reconocer: provoca una crisis en la Sociedad Europea porque las masas no pueden liderar la sociedad. Esto no significa que puedan elegir a sus propios representantes. El problema es la hiperdemocracia: eso es la emancipación sin asumir la responsabilidad. El fenómeno de la aglomeración se produce durante este período: ciudades llenas, trenes compl etos, hoteles compl etos, las masas están en los lugares públicos. Esto no es malo, es una indicación de la civilización, «aunque el fenómeno es lógico, natural, no se puede negar que no ocurrió antes». Esto no se debe a un auge demográfico sino a la masificación de la sociedad (estos individuos preexistían, pero aún no formaban una masa). En todo esto hay un elemento negativo: los mejores (según sus cualidades) son absorbidos por la masa, «los actores son absorbidos por el coro». Cuando Ortega habla de masa no se refiere a la clase obrera, porque «la masa es el hombre promedio». La Masa no es solo un hecho cuantitativo, sino también cualitativo que define una media que tiende hacia abajo. El componente de la masa no se siente como tal y, por lo tanto, se siente con todo a gusto: no se da cuenta de la condición del conformismo en el que se derrumbó.
ellauri183.html on line 258: The nuclear holocaust has come and gone. Only one man survives: paleologist Calvin Cohn, who happened to be safely, deepl y underwater at the time. And, after some black-humor-ish conversations with God, Cohn is allowed to live—for a while, at least—and he finds himself on an island a la Robinson Crusoe, with a communicative chimp named Buz (product of chimp-speech experiments) as his only companion. Cohn, son of a rabbi, engages in existential, religious, and Talmudic speculations with the chimp—though he refrains from trying to convert him to Judaism. He must reexamine the basics of social interaction—when Buz gets too physically chummy ("If you had suckled the lad, could you marry him?"), when a friendly gorilla appears and causes jealousies, and, above all, when five more talking chimps appear... including the lisping Mary Madelyn, the object of everyone's sexual attention (including Cohn's).
ellauri183.html on line 272: I can't say any more about the pl ot without spoiling it, so I won´t. Cohn himself is--from my perspective anyway--one of those characters you end up really liking and caring and worrying about, in part because he attempts to stay rational and kind no matter how absurd or threatening the situations get. A good book to escape into, especially if you enjoy compelling portrayals of apocalyptic stuff peopl ed by characters who question the nature of existence in a world where God´s mysteries remain maddeningly unsolvable. (less)
ellauri183.html on line 280: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri183.html on line 287: Conservative former work and pensions secretary Stephen Crabb intervened to describe her comparison as 'historically wrong, factually wrong and morally wrong', and added that it did 'a huge disservice not just to the peopl e of Ukraine but also to the peopl e of Palestine and the peopl e of Israel as well as to all the peopl e in the west, who face a unique situation and set of challenges'.
ellauri183.html on line 289: Ms Elliott repl ied: 'What I was talking about was the upholding of international law which your own minister talked about a few minutes ago and the right of upholding international law is as relevant in Ukraine as it is in Palestine.'
ellauri183.html on line 291: She called for a 'compl ete and total ban of illegal Israeli settlements' in the West Bank and said that recognising Palestine was the 'bare minimum' of what the UK should do as part of a two-state solution to the conflict.
ellauri183.html on line 298: I've seen some images and gifs on r/imgoingtohellforthis and what not showing Jews as miserly peopl e. What's all this about?
ellauri183.html on line 357: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri183.html on line 376: Ja edelleen me ollaan kaikki hyvin sairaita ja väsyneitä koska me on syöty niin paljon noita kirottuja hedelmiä pl us jälkiruoaksi homeisia matzoja.
ellauri183.html on line 402: The Jewish Learning Group creates pl ain language how-to guides on Jewish law and custom, traditional prayer texts with transliteration and instruction, and educational audio and video guides. Their innovative products help G-ds chosen peopl e attain the rudimentary knowledge and confidence needed to build, lead, and further their Jewish observance at a comfortable and gradual pace.
ellauri183.html on line 504: Anani'ah (Heb., Ananyah', עֲנִניָה, protected by Jehovah), the name of a man and of a pl ace. SEE ANANIAS.
ellauri183.html on line 542: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri183.html on line 570: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/76/CirconcisionRothenburg.jpg/550px-CirconcisionRothenburg.jpg" />
ellauri183.html on line 634: The war that Jewish scholars call The War of Varus (ei se "missä ovat legioonani" tunari vaan joku sen sukulainen). It is the war that took pl ace in Galilee, Judaea and Idumaea just after the death of Herod which started with the massacre of the 3000 Jewish worshippers in the templ e at the Passover of 1 B.C.E. Josephus stated that this war against the Jews which was directed by the governor of Syria, Quintilius Varus, took pl ace in Palestine, but it has been a puzzle to historians that there appear to be no contemporary Roman accounts that justify it as occurring (ollenkaan tai ainakaan just tohon aikaan).
ellauri183.html on line 638: The Pharisees were the popular leaders of the Jews and the ones most laypeopl e looked to with confidence. The majority of the Jewish population was then expecting a world ruling messianic king to arise on the historical scene. And indeed, Josephus tells us that after Herod’s death many “kingly upstarts” emerged in Judaea and this reflects the general expectancy of the Jews that the messianic age was then imminent.
ellauri184.html on line 33: KAPERNAUMIN EVANKELIUMI play:none">Nysväystä
ellauri184.html on line 48: During his time in the Philippines, Mailer was first assigned to regimental headquarters as a typist, then assigned as a wire lineman. In early 1945, after volunteering for a reconnaissance pl atoon, he compl eted more than two dozen patrols in contested territory, and engaged in a few firefights and skirmishes. After the Japanese surrender, he was sent to Japan as part of the army of occupation, was promoted to sergeant, and became a first cook and argued about his girth.
ellauri184.html on line 50: Neiti Mallory kertoo tästä lisää: "Norman was an oxymoron — an overweight senior citizen who was one of the best lovers I ever had." Mallory writes that Mailer never had erectile dysfunction: "Not once. Not in nine years..." Vanhasta Naahumista tulee mieleen Norssin voimistelunopettaja Lahtinen ja Star Warsin Yoda. “Each week he’d want to pl ay a new game . . . doctor, manicurist, masseur, Hollywood director (that was his favorite).” “When our relationship ended, I realized that . . . Norman had never been on my team and had been slandering my writing and me behind my back.”
ellauri184.html on line 60: Morales moved in with Mailer during 1951 into an apartment on First Avenue near Second Street in the East Village, and they married in 1954. They had two daughters, Danielle and Elizabeth. After attending a party on Saturday, November 19, 1960, Mailer stabbed Adele twice with a two-and-a-half inch blade that he used to clean his nails, nearly killing her by puncturing her pericardium. He stabbed her once in the chest and once in the back. Adele required emergency surgery but made a quick recovery. Mailer claimed he had stabbed Adele "to relieve her of cancer". He was involuntarily committed to Bellevue Hospital for 17 days. While Adele did not press charges, saying she wanted to protect their daughters, Mailer later pl eaded guilty to a reduced charge of assault saying, "I feel I did a lousy, dirty, cowardly thing", and received a suspended sentence of three years' probation. In 1962, the two divorced. In 1997, Adele published a memoir of their marriage entitled The Last Party, which recounted her husband stabbing her at a party and the aftermath. This incident has been a focal point for feminist critics of Mailer, who point to themes of sexual violence in his work.
ellauri184.html on line 62: His third wife, whom he married in 1962, and divorced in 1963, was the British heiress and journalist Lady Jeanne Campbell (1929–2007). She was the only daughter of Ian Campbell, 11th Duke of Argyll, a Scottish aristocrat and clan chief with a notorious private life, and a granddaughter of the press baron Lord Beaverbrook. The coupl e had a daughter, actress Kate Mailer.
ellauri184.html on line 72: Bodily urges are fundamental to Mailer's approach to novels and short works. According to his obituary in The Independent, his "relentless machismo seemed out of pl ace in a man who was actually quite small – though perhaps that was where the aggression originated." For Mailer, African-American men reflected a challenge to his own notions of masculinity. His pecker was not much bigger than those of Hemingway and Scott Fitzgerald, about the size of his pen knife. Like many men with a tiny penis he sought comfort with men and women equally. Throughout his work and personal communications, Nuchem repeatedly expresses interest in, includes episodes of or makes references to, bisexuality or homosexuality.
ellauri184.html on line 74: Mailer wrote 12 novels in 59 years. After compl eting courses in French language and culture at the University of Paris in 1947–48, he returned to the U.S. shortly after The Naked and the Dead was published in May 1948. A New York Times best seller for 62 weeks, it was the only one of Mailer's novels to reach the number one position. It was hailed by many as one of the best American wartime novels and included in a list of the hundred best English-language novels of the twentieth century by the Modern Library. The book that made his reputation sold over a million copies in its first year, (three million by 1981) and has never gone out of print. It is still considered to be one of the finest depictions of Americans in combat during World War II.
ellauri184.html on line 88: Harlot's Ghost, Mailer's longest novel (1310 pages), appeared in 1991 and received his best reviews since The Executioner's Song. It is an expl oration of the untold dramas of the CIA from the end of World War II to 1965. He performed a huge amount of research for the novel, which is still on CIA reading lists. He ended the novel with the words "To be continued" and pl anned to write a sequel, titled Harlot's Grave, but other projects intervened and he never wrote it. Harlot's Ghost sold well.
ellauri184.html on line 90: His final novel, The Castle in the Forest, which focused on Hitler's childhood, reached number five on the Times best-seller list after publication in January 2007. It received reviews that were more positive than any of his books since The Executioner's Song. Castle was intended to be the first volume of a trilogy, but Mailer died several months after it was compl eted. The Castle in the Forest received a laudatory 6,200-word front-page review by Lee Siegel in the New York Times Book Review, as well as a Bad Sex in Fiction Award by the Literary Review magazine.
ellauri184.html on line 110: Eight days after Yeshua was born, his parents followed the Law and took Him to the Templ e to be circumcised. Esinahka on kuulemma Italiassa reliikkinä.
ellauri184.html on line 116: Think about it. Yeshua, a young Jewish man, hanging out with the learned and well respected teachers in the Templ e. Of course! Naahumin kekka siitä mitä Jeshua olis siellä muka sanonut on aika säälittävä.
ellauri184.html on line 129: The word “Cousin” in Greek is “suggenis” which means “kinswoman” or “relative.” The word “suggenis” does not necessarily mean “cousin.” It simpl y impl ies that Mary and Elizabeth were relatives, with no indication as to degree of relationship.
ellauri184.html on line 165: ploads/2022/06/Picture1.png" />
ellauri184.html on line 223: Admitting that the following is a drastic oversimpl ification but praying that it’s not a compl ete caricature, Professor A. France summarizes seven differences:
ellauri184.html on line 224: Racially the area of the former Northern Kingdom of Israel had had, ever since the Assyrian conquest in the eighth century B.C., a more mixed population, within which more conservative Jewish areas (like Nazareth and Capernaum) stood in close proximity to largely pagan cities, of which in the first century the new Hellenistic centers of Tiberias and Sepphoris were the chief exampl es.
ellauri184.html on line 235: Religiously the Judean opinion was that Galileans were lax in their observance of proper ritual, and the problem was exacerbated by the distance of Galilee from the templ e and the theological leadership, which was focused in Jerusalem.
ellauri184.html on line 237: The result, he says, is that even an impeccably Jewish Galilean in first-century Jerusalem was not among his own peopl e; he was as much a foreigner as an Irishman in London or a Kuopio person in Helsinki. His accent would immediately mark him out as “not one of us,” and all the communal prejudice of the supposedly superior culture of the capital city would stand against his claim to be heard even as a prophet, let alone as the “Messiah,” a title which, as everyone knew, belonged to Judea (cf. John 7:40-42 ).
ellauri184.html on line 250: According to the biblical chronicle, the Tribe of Manasseh was a part of a loose confederation of Israelite tribes from after the conquest of the land by Joshua until the formation of the first Kingdom of Israel in c. 1050 BC. No central government existed, and in times of crisis the peopl e were led by ad hoc leaders known as Judges (see Book of Judges). With the growth of the threat from Palestinian (sorry) Philistine incursions, the Israelite tribes decided to form a strong centralised monarchy to meet the challenge, and the Tribe of Manasseh joined the new kingdom with Saul as the first king. After the death of Saul, all the tribes other than Judah remained loyal to the House of Saul, but after the death of Ish-bosheth, Saul's son who succeeded him to the throne of Israel, the Tribe of Manasseh joined the other northern Israelite tribes in making Judah's king David the king of a re-united Kingdom of Israel. However, on the accession of David's grandson Rehoboam, in c. 930 BC the northern tribes spl it from the House of David and from Saul's tribe Benjamin to reform Israel as the Northern Kingdom. Manasseh was a member of the Northern Kingdom until the kingdom was conquered by Assyria in c. 723 BC and the population deported. From that time, the Tribe of Manasseh has been counted as one of the ten lost tribes of Israel.
ellauri184.html on line 252: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c2/12_Tribes_of_Israel_Map.svg/800px-12_Tribes_of_Israel_Map.svg.png" />
ellauri184.html on line 257: The Bible records that following the compl etion of the conquest of Canaan by the Israelite tribes, Joshua allocated the land among the twelve tribes. According to biblical scholar Kenneth Kitchen, this conquest should be dated slightly after 1200 BCE. Some modern scholars argue that the conquest of Joshua, as described in the Book of Joshua, never occurred. “Besides the rejection of the Albrightian conquest model, the general consensus among OT scholars is that the Book of Joshua has no value in the historical reconstruction. They see the book as an ideological retrojection from a later period — either as early as the reign of Josiah or as late as the Hasmonean period.” "It behooves us to ask, in spite of the fact that the overwhelming consensus of modern scholarship is that Joshua is a pious fiction composed by the deuteronomistic school, how does and how has the Jewish community dealt with these foundational narratives, saturated as they are with acts of violence against others?" ”Recent decades, for exampl e, have seen a remarkable reevaluation of evidence concerning the conquest of the land of Canaan by Joshua. As more sites have been excavated, there has been a growing consensus that the main story of Joshua, that of a speedy and compl ete conquest (e.g. Josh. 11.23: 'Thus Joshua conquered the whole country, just as the LORD had promised Moses') is contradicted by the archaeological record, though there are indications of some destruction at the appropriate time. No oliko sitten koko esinahkakasa satua? Ketä enää uskoa? Usko siirtää vuoria, eikö sitten esinahkakukkuloita?
ellauri184.html on line 261: Ukraine’s foreign minister tells his US counterpart in a meeting that his country needs fighter jets and air defence systems and has called NATO’s refusal to impl ement a no-fly zone over Ukraine a “sign of weakness”. Buk-buk-buk chickens!
ellauri184.html on line 265: Thanks in large part to Jesus-movies and swords-and-sandals cinematic epics (e.g., Ben-Hur, Masada, Spartacus, Life of Brian), there is a widespread perception that distinctively Woman soldiers infested Palestine during the life of Jesus – often signaled in such films by highbwow Bwitish accents in contrast with the unpretentious American dialect spoken by Jews. As deepl y engrained as this image is in the popular consciousness, it is not entirely accurate. There were several different types of soldiers in the Woman East during the New Testament period and the differences between these soldiers were significant; the languages they spoke, the government they worked for, their relationship to the civilians they encountered, their pay, and many other specifics differed considerably.
ellauri184.html on line 267: This image of identifiably Woman soldiers occupying the land of Palestine operates on the assumption that biblical soldiers were all legionawies. Legionawies differed from other soldiers of the early Woman period in several wespects. First, legionawies were empl oyed directly by Wome. Their allegiances were to the empewow and whichever genewal they served, not to any particular king, weligious group, or province. All troops swore an oath of allegiance, the sacwamentum , to the empewow himself. Unlike most other soldiers, legionawies were Woman citizens before they were wecwuited.
ellauri184.html on line 279: Remembering the distinctions between these three militawy forces – legionawies, auxiliaries, and royal forces – is pivotal for understanding both pre-War and post-War Palestine. The Jewish War (66-73 CE) was a catastrophic event for civilians in the region, regardless of their participation in the revolt against Wome. The destruction of the templ e, the imposition of massive new militawy and administrative apparatus, widespread devastation, significant loss of life, among other factors, led to significantly different experiences of the militawy before and after the Jewish War. It is impossible to talk about the pre-War and post-War life without attending to the details of these different units, especially auxiliaries and legionawies.
ellauri184.html on line 285: In the Palestinian hinterlands, it was not practical to use Sebastene and Caesarean soldiers, so other locals were depl oyed to form militawy garrisons before the War. Indeed, there was little reason for Judaea to suppl y soldiers to principalities like Galilee and Batanaea. Even though Caesarea and Sebaste were primarily Gentile, we will see that Caesarean Jews also served in the Woman army.
ellauri184.html on line 287: While many biblical scholars assume that soldiers with Woman names must have been Woman citizens, evidence suggests otherwise: one papyrus written 103 CE indicates that some auxiliaries received Womanized names (i.e., tria nomina) shortly after wecwuitment, even before training compl eted. Because some soldiers changed their name shortly after wecwuitment, the mere act of joining the militawy often obscured soldiers’ ethnic and geographic origins. Benjamin Isaac thus observes a few obvious instances where soldiers from the Decapolis dropped their Semitic birth name to take up a Woman one.
ellauri184.html on line 289: Thus, while Wome did not conscript Jews into militawy service against their will, there is no indication that this pwevented them from serving on their own accord. Several tax receipts of Jewish decurions named Jesus, Hananiah, Benjamin and a dipl oma to Aggaeus Bar-Callippus, a Jewish veteran who retired to the Syrian city of Samosata. We should not forget the famous exampl e of Tiberius Julius Alexander, governor of Judaea and Egypt, a Jewish officer who led the assault on the Jerusalem templ e in the Jewish War.
ellauri184.html on line 291: But how did the Jewish religion fit into the Woman army? A Jewish soldier named Matthew tended to the pigs at Herodium. There is no reason to infer that he no longer cared about Jewishness. Jewish practices varied considerably, such that one person’s piety might be another’s heresy. No doubt these soldiers had compl ex, conflicted, and even conflicting internal lives just as we do today.
ellauri184.html on line 293: However, over many centuries and across three continents, the Womans had demonstrated that a well-twained, well-discipl ined militawy, if fully expl oited by gifted commanders, could weap vast wewards and it would not be until 2 millennia after its fall that warfare would weturn to the scale and professionalism that Wome had bwought to the field of combat.
ellauri184.html on line 312: (1) Sex between Gentile masters and slaves was commonpl ace.
ellauri184.html on line 346: The town is cited in all four gospels (Matthew 4:13, 8:5, 11:23, 17:24, Mark 1:21, 2:1, 9:33, Luke 4:23, 31,7:1, 10:15, John 2:12, 4:46, 6:17, 24, 59) where it was reported to have been the hometown of the tax collector Matthew (aka Leevi, eri kuin evankelista), and located not far from Bethsaida, the hometown of the apostles Simon Peter, Andrew, James and John. Some readers take Mark 2:1 as evidence that Jesus may have owned a home in the town, but it is more likely that he stayed in the house of one of his followers here. He certainly spent time teaching and healing there. One Sabbath, Jesus taught in the synagogue in Capernaum and healed a man who was possessed by an unclean spirit (Luke 4:31–36 and Mark 1:21–28). This story is notable as the only one that is common to the gospels of Mark and Luke, but not contained in the Gospel of Matthew (see Synoptic Gospels for more literary comparison between the gospels). Afterward, Jesus healed Simon Peter´s mother-in-law of a fever (Luke 4:38–39). According to Luke 7:1–10 and Matthew 8:5, this is also the pl ace where Jesus healed the boyfriend of a Roman centurion who had asked for his help. Capernaum is also the location of the healing of the paralytic lowered by friends through the roof to reach Jesus, as reported in Mark 2:1–12 and Luke 5:17–26.
ellauri184.html on line 357: Second, the fact that it is a theological issue does not prevent it from being a moral one as well. The behavior is sin. “Do you not know that the unrighteous will not inherit the kingdom of God? Do not deceived. Neither formicators, nor idolaters, nor adulterers, nor homosexuals, nor sodomites, nor thieves, nor covetous, nor drunkards, nor revilers, nor extortioners will inherit the kingdom of God” (1 Cor. 6:9-10 ). The word translated “homosexuals” here strictly refers to catamites — the word has the connotation of soft. We would say swish. The other word sodomite refers to the “male” homosexual, the one pl aying the role of the male. All the ingenuity in the world cannot change what the Bible bluntly states here. As well, consider 1 Tim. 1:10 . “. . . for fornicators, for sodomites . . . and if there is any other thing that is contrary to sound doctrine.” The Old Testament speaks to this as well. See Deut. 23:17-18 , Job 36:14 , Lev. 18:22 . Those guilty of such things are living in a contemptible way, and the Scripture calls them dogs. Poor dogs.
ellauri184.html on line 361: Fourth, the problem is not just to be addressed through a Christian understanding, appl ied to private lives. Homosexuality is a public problem in the public square, and repentance will bring with it an understanding of the necessity of public reformation. When Josiah cleansed the land, he shut down the sodomite houses near or in the house of the Lord. “Then he tore down the ritual booths of the perverted persons that were in the house of the Lord . . .” (2 Kings 23:7 ; cf. 1 Kings 14:24 ,15:12 ,22:46 ). Unless it results in the bath houses closing, it will not have been a real reformation
ellauri184.html on line 362: Fifth, we must recognize that a grave temptation exists here among the peopl e who profess to follow God to take down their pants and partake in the fun.
ellauri184.html on line 364: When God is pl eased to grant reformation and revival in our time, this will mean that our churches will begin to fill up with cleansed and forgiven sodomites. Can't say for sure about the catamites, thery're so swishy .
ellauri184.html on line 420: For exampl e, Jesus taught about subjects such as prayer, justice, care for the needy, handling the religious law, divorce, fasting, judging other peopl e, salvation, and much more.
ellauri184.html on line 422: For exampl e:
ellauri184.html on line 425: No toi menee kyllä vähän överixi sanoisin. Jotain rajaa. Mut kohtuuttomia vaatimuksia tarvitaan että tulee synnintuntoa ja pelastuspainetta, ja sitten tuodaan pappia ja parannusta kehiin, pl us kolehti tietysti.
ellauri184.html on line 467: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri184.html on line 471: Jeshuan Colt koittaa pukittaa mutta sillä pysyy ohjat käsissä. Ei tää on kyl selkeästi yritystä tehdä lempeästä piikkilankapäästä vähän machompi. Jiihaa! Ei mikään Harmoni ja minä, urkuharmoni pl us väpisevä-äänisiä lakuhattuja. Ei, vaan nuorta verta, kovia kavioita, rodeota huopahattu kädessä, poni loikkii selkä köyryssä mutta Jeshua ei putoa, pysyy satulassa kuin liimattuna Elmer-liimalla.
ellauri184.html on line 514: During the late 19th and early 20th centuries, the primary justification for circumcision was to prevent masturbation (???) and intentionally reduce male sexual pl easure, which was believed to cause a wide range of medical problems. Modern proponents say that circumcision reduces the risks of a range of infections and diseases, and confers sexual benefits (???). By contrast, some opponents, particularly of routine neonatal circumcision, question its utility and effectiveness in preventing such diseases, and object to subjecting newborn males, without their consent, to a procedure they consider to have dubious and nonessential benefits, significant risks, and a potentially negative impact on general health and later sexual enjoyment, as well as violating their human rights .
ellauri184.html on line 518: The Book of Genesis expl ains circumcision as a covenant with God given to Abraham,[Gen 17:10] In Judaism it "symbolizes the promise of lineage and fruitfulness of a great (???) nation ," the "seal of ownership (???) and the guarantee of relationship between peopl es and their god." Some scholars look elsewhere for the origin of Jewish circumcision. One expl anation, dating from Herodotus, is that the custom was acquired from the Egyptians, possibly during the period of enslavement. An additional hypothesis, based on linguistic/ethnographic work begun in the 19th century, suggests circumcision was a common tribal custom among Semitic tribes (Jews, Arabs, and Phoenicians).
ellauri184.html on line 526: According to rabbinical accounts, he desecrated the Second Templ e of Jerusalem by pl acing a statue of Olympian Zeus on the altar of the Templ e; this incident is also reported by the biblical Book of Daniel, where the author refers to the statue of the Greek god inside the Templ e as "abomination of desolation". Antiochus´ decrees and vituperation of Judaism motivated the Maccabean Revolt; the Maccabees reacted violently against the forced Hellenization of Judea, destroyed pagan altars in the villages, circumcised boys , and forced Hellenized Jews into outlawry. The revolt ended in the re-establishment of an independent Jewish kingdom under the Hasmoneans, until it turned into a client state of the Roman Republic under the reign of Herod the Great (37–4 BCE).
ellauri184.html on line 532: However, there were also many Jews, known as "Hellenizers", who viewed Hellenization and social integration of the Jewish peopl e in the Greco-Roman world favourably, and pursued a compl etely different approach: accepting the Emperor´s decree and even making efforts to restore their foreskins to better assimilate into Hellenistic society. The latter approach was common during the reign of Antiochus, and again under Roman rule. The foreskin was restored by one of two methods, that were later revived in the late 20th century; both were described in detail by the Greek physician Aulus Cornelius Celsus in his comprehensive encyclopedic work De Medicina, written during the reign of Tiberius (14-37 CE). The surgical method involved freeing the skin covering the penis by dissection, and then pulling it forward over the glans; he also described a simpl er surgical technique used on men whose prepuce is naturally insufficient to cover their glans. The second approach, known as "epispasm", was non-surgical: a restoration device which consisted of a special weight made of bronze, copper, or leather (sometimes called Pondus Judaeus, i. e. "Jewish burden"), was affixed to the penis, pulling its skin downward. Over time, a new foreskin was generated, or a short prepuce was lengthened, by means of tissue expansion. Martial also mentioned the instrument in Epigrammaton (Book 7:35).
ellauri184.html on line 534: The Apostle Paul referred to these practices in his letters, saying: "Was a man already circumcised when he was called? He should not become uncircumcised ."[1Cor 7:18] But he also expl icitly denounced the forcing of circumcision upon non-Jews, rejecting and condemning those Judaizers who stipulated the ritual to Gentile Christians, labelling such advocates as "false brothers"[Gal 2:4] (see below). In the mid-2nd century Rabbinical Jewish leaders, due to increasing cases of foreskin restorations in Roman Empire, introduced a radical method of circumcision , the periah, that left the glans totally uncovered and sew the remaining skin. The new method became immediately the only valid circumcision procedure, to ensure that a born Jew will remain circumcised and avoiding risk of restoring the foreskin . Operations became mostly irreversible.
ellauri184.html on line 563: Pulkkisella oli albumissa 105 toi Hesekielin Ohola ja Oholipa, joku jumalinen ämmä mätki sillä kanssasisaria. Naisten puoli helottaa kuin helvetin peräseinä, sanoi Kaari Utrionkin ruustinna ja kuoli siltä seisomalta apopl exiaan. Oho, ottaako sinun orasi, ei liiku minun lipani. Polttavaa on Hesen kastike. Musta huppu päähän naisille, kaikki on niiden oma vika, mitäs ovat niin haluttavia. Iisebelixi sanotaan jenkeissä mustia huoria, kuten Harrixen Kamala.
ellauri184.html on line 622: In summary, the following understanding of biblical history seems pl ausible: 1. Although the Sanhedrin had the right to condemn Jesus to death and execute the sentence, it seemed opportune for various reasons to have the governor render this verdict. Moreover, although the Sanhedrin and the Roman governor had very diverse perspectives on Jesus, their interests finally converged, which led to Pilate’s condemnation of Jesus on grounds of unproven political charges.
ellauri184.html on line 623: 2. Processes of marginalization and not the concrete breaking of laws – led to Jesus’s death. Not only was Jesus passively exposed to these processes of marginalization, but he partly contributed to them because he modelled himself as an outsider and distanced himself too little from the messianic expectations ascribed to him. This staged self-marginalization – partly done in performative fashion – was dangerous because the term “Messiah” was often charged with political content, as was exempl ified by numerous rebel leaders who regarded themselves as the Messiah or were considered as such by their followers. Many of them were executed, including Jesus.
ellauri184.html on line 625: Extant historical sources provide a compl icated hodgepodge of religious, political, mental, and socio- psychological issues that prove difficult to disentangle. Most of all, the religious issues cannot be separated from the political ones. I propose four hypotheses (not very original):
ellauri184.html on line 627: a) Jesus’s unusual behavior at different levels mostly expl ains the hatred against him. He did not breach any major laws, but more seriously, he did not live up to multipl e expectations; instead, he maneuvered himself into the position of an outsider. This means that it was mental and psychological dispositions and perceptions on the part of his contemporaries – and not legal issues – that led to his receiving the death penalty.
ellauri184.html on line 633: d) Most charges are passed over in silence in the accounts of the Passion. These lacunae are easy to discover and fill in since the Gospels describe the events leading up to the Passion in a narrative and pl ausible manner.
ellauri184.html on line 638: If it is correct that the charge of blasphemy was brought forward (i.e., that Jesus claimed to be the eschatologically defined Son of Man, which seems to be the main reason for his execution in Jewish understanding), it would be easy to ascribe a political impl ication to this charge. This line of political argumentation is most clearly expressed in Luke 23.2: “We found this man perverting our nation, forbidding us to pay taxes to the emperor, and saying that he himself is the Messiah. The use of the death penalty confirms this political charge (crimen laesae maiestatis). Crucifixion as a Roman form of execution was reserved for slaves and peregrines who were involved in insurrections. The subtitle on the cross (ho basileus ton Iudaion, Iesus Nazarenus rex Iudaeorum, INRI), if it is historical, corroborates this particular charge.
ellauri184.html on line 642: By deriving his superior authority directly from God (e.g., in exorcisms and forgiveness of sins: Lk. 7.47-50) through his unique proximity to God and his ultimate claim to his unique interpretation of divine law – he exclusively set his own standards and his own criteria of who had access to Heaven and who did not – he upset the masses and caught the attention of the authorities, who perceived such utterances as subversive. More and more, they felt threatened in their own authority. In addition to behaving as though bestowed with superior authority, Jesus sharpl y criticized the Templ e to the point that he finally became violent within its precincts. After a final incident, the representatives of the Templ e, the priests, the scribes, and the Elders, who strove to preserve the core of the Jewish faith as embodied in the Templ e, felt threatened in their position.
ellauri184.html on line 648: Matthew and Mark make it clear that some peopl e – including the politically and legally decisive Roman magistrate – could have perceived him as such a political activist (titulus crucis!). Again, we see that it is not necessarily Jesus’s concrete behavior, but rather the perception that counts.
ellauri184.html on line 649: Jesus was not merely a prophet. Due to his wanderings and teachings, he was also a radical itinerant charismatic preacher who represented a decidedly anti-hegemonial world view. His speeches were seen by the Jewish establishment as an incitement of the peopl e.
ellauri184.html on line 659: Mercy as a basic principl e of premodern jurisdiction was always an arbitrary act that took pl ace more or less by chance. If things went wrong, culprits could be released and innocent peopl e could be condemned. By whose criteria, one may ask.
ellauri184.html on line 711: Yes, according to this view, He does. It seems that Jesus and Mary share the same father, the archangel Gabriel. This makes Mary both the mother and sister of Jesus. That, at least, seems to be the impl ication that the Gospel of Philip is hinting at.
ellauri184.html on line 734: When Jesus was on the cross, both the apostle John and Mary the mother of Jesus stood nearby. In John 19:26–27 we read, “When Jesus saw his mother there, and the discipl e whom he loved standing nearby, he said to her, ‘Woman, here is your son,’ and to the discipl e, ‘Here is your mother.’ From that time on, this discipl e took her into his home.” The clear understanding of the passage is that Jesus commanded John to care for Mary after His death.
ellauri184.html on line 758: Mutta (sanoo Jeshua) näin jälkeenpäin ajatellen mun tappio oli suuri propagandavoitto optimismille: nyt jäbät ymmärtävät ettei niin pahaa ettei jotain hyvääkin. Tappionkin voi kääntää voitoxi, kun sen oikein ymmärtää. Rakkaus ei ole ase vaan se on voitonsaalis. (Tää ei kyllä ole ihan ortodoxiaa, tässä on Naahumilla juutalainen pukinsorkka piilossa. Leobardi ei pääse täpl istään enempää kuin Esa Saarinen taivaan kuningattaresta.)
ellauri184.html on line 773: Jose Saramago is an atheist. This should be enough warning for everyone that desires to read the book. It is very expl icit and so religion it’s exposed at its weakest and God as a character is revealed. I come from a Roman-Catholic background but I still wanted to read it, ever since the Gnostic gospel where Jesus childhood is revealed and he changes from a mischievous badly behaved kid to the Jesus from the new testament I wanted to see Saramago’s take on it. Saramago is such a master of words that he makes every bit of faith look totally illogical.
ellauri184.html on line 775: It does not take long for us to find out that Saramago is extremely sharp at finding all contradictions on roman-catholic religion. In the novel God seems to be the greediest of all gods, the vainest, the most detached from his peopl e. Detached even from his son as he appeared to him in different shapes, only in the meeting at the lake did he appear to him as a man. God does not command, he orders, he tricks his own son into following his pl an to the end. Ultimately Jesus’s betrayal was his last act of martyrdom.
ellauri184.html on line 781: The characters in the book are fascinating; my Jesuits friends and I laughed and enjoy this book. There were no doubts in our head by the end of the book. We did not feel like it shook our religion or affected the way we perceived God. This book was after all under fiction so everyone that is easily offended stay away from this book and stop compl aining about blasphemy and crying around like little kids. Saramago is a Nobel price winner and foremost a grown man that is entitled to his own opinions. This one of his finest, if not the best, of his book in my opinion, a must read. Of course he is dead by now.
ellauri184.html on line 783: Jesus having sex with Mary Magdalene in the whorehouse without the blessing of marriage. The demon asking Jesus to use a sheep for sexual release. An angel posing as a beggar during the Annunciation scene. The same beggar-angel walking with Mary to Bethlehem provoking jealousy to the doubting Joseph. Three shepherds instead of 3 kings visiting the family in the Bethlehem. Joseph crucified and dying on the cross mistaken as a zealot. Jesus seeing God in the desert. Jesus riding on the boat with the God and the Devil. These are some of the shocking deviations from the story that Saramago imagined and incorporated to come up with an “irreverent, profound, skeptical, funny, heretical, deepl y philosophical, provocative and compelling work.” (Source: Harold Robbin who says that this is his favorite work of Saramago. So far, I agree).
ellauri185.html on line 33: Horatio Alger play:none">Sikailua
ellauri185.html on line 52: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e1/Hannah_VICTORS%2C_Jan.jpg/800px-Hannah_VICTORS%2C_Jan.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri185.html on line 58: The childless Hannah vows to Yahweh of hosts that, if she has a son, he will be dedicated to Yahweh. Eli, the priest of Shiloh, where the Ark of the Covenant is provisionally located, blesses her. A child named Samuel is born, and Samuel is dedicated to the Lord as a Nazirite—the only one besides Samson to be identified in the Bible. Eli's sons, Hophni and Phinehas, sin against God's laws and the peopl e, a sin that causes them to die in the Battle of Aphek. But the child Samuel grows up "in the presence of the Lord."
ellauri185.html on line 62: The Book of Samuel (Hebrew: ספר שמואל, Sefer Shmuel) is a book in the Hebrew Bible and two books (1 Samuel and 2 Samuel) in the Christian Old Testament. The book is part of the narrative history of Ancient Israel called the Deuteronomistic history, a series of books (Joshua, Judges, Samuel, and Kings) that constitute a theological history of the Israelites and that aim to expl ain God's law for Israel under the guidance of the prophets.
ellauri185.html on line 73: King Hiram I of Tyre allied himself with David and Solomon in 2 Samuel, 1 Kings and 1 Chronicles. Hiram provided architects, workmen, cedar wood, and gold to build Solomon's Templ e in Jerusalem.
ellauri185.html on line 75: Tyre is listed among an alliance of ten nations that would conspire against God's peopl e. Many Bible commentaries agree that this has not occurred yet historically and may be prophetic.
ellauri185.html on line 82: The Book of Joel groups Tyre, Sidon and Philistia together and it states that the peopl e of Judah and Jerusalem were sold to the Greeks, and there would thus be punishment because of it.
ellauri185.html on line 95: What about the destruction of Tyre? Well, Nebuchadnezzer’s attack came shortly after Ezekiel, so it’s hard to tell for sure from our perspective whether or not Ezekiel truly prophesied that phase of Tyre’s destruction. But as far as Alexander is concerned, it is well established that this took pl ace in 322 BC. So this is a clear exampl e of the Bible foretelling an event (actually several) in detail.
ellauri185.html on line 97: The book begins with Samuel's birth and Yahweh's call to him as a boy. The story of the Ark of the Covenant follows. It tells of Israel's oppression by the Philistines, which brought about Samuel's anointing of Saul as Israel's first king. But Saul proved unworthy, and God's choice turned to David, who defeated Israel's enemies, purchased the threshing floor where his son Solomon would build the First Templ e, and brought the Ark of the Covenant to Jerusalem. Yahweh then promised David and his sucessors an everlasting dynasty.
ellauri185.html on line 102: The Philistines capture the Ark of the Covenant from Shiloh and take it to the templ e of their god Dagon, who recognizes the supremacy of Yahweh. The Philistines are afflicted with pl agues and return the ark to the Israelites, but to the territory of the tribe of Benjamin rather than to Shiloh. The Philistines attack the Israelites gathered at Mizpah in Benjamin. Samuel appeals to Yahweh, the Philistines are decisively beaten, and the Israelites reclaim their lost territory.
ellauri185.html on line 106: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/55/Mizpah_1922_Jockstrap_Advertisement.gif" />
ellauri185.html on line 108: In Samuel's old age (wearing a Mitzpah bollock supporter) he appoints his sons Joel and Abijah as judges but, because of their corruption, the peopl e ask for a king to rule over them. God directs Samuel to grant the peopl e their wish despite his concerns: God gives them Saul from the tribe of Benjamin.
ellauri185.html on line 118: God tells Samuel to anoint David of Bethlehem as king, and David enters Saul's court as his armor-bearer and harpist. Saul's son and heir Jonathan befriends David and recognizes him as the rightful king. Saul then pl ots David's death, but David flees into the wilderness where he becomes a champion of the Hebrews. David joins the Philistines, but he continues to secretly champion his own peopl e until Saul and Jonathan are killed in battle at Mount Gilboa.
ellauri185.html on line 120: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/Ernst_Josephson._-_David_och_Saul.JPG/220px-Ernst_Josephson._-_David_och_Saul.JPG" width="50%" />
ellauri185.html on line 131: David captures Jerusalem and brings the Ark there. David wishes to build a templ e, but Nathan tells him that one of his sons will be the one to build the templ e. David defeats the enemies of Israel, slaughtering Philistines, Moabites, Edomites, Syrians, and Arameans.
ellauri185.html on line 141: 2 Samuel concludes with four chapters (chapters 21 to 24) that lie outside the chronological succession narrative of Saul and David, a narrative that will continue in The Book of Kings. These four suppl ementary chapters cover a great famine during David's reign; the execution of seven of Saul's remaining descendants, only Mephibosheth being saved (kannattiko mainita), David's song of thanksgiving, which is almost identical to Psalm 18; David's last words; a list of David's "mighty warriors"; an offering made by David using water from the well of Bethlehem; David's sinful census; a pl ague over Israel which David opted for as preferable to either famine or oppression; and the construction of an altar on land David purchased from Araunah the Jebusite.
ellauri185.html on line 152: On November 16, 1491, an auto-da-fé was held outside of Ávila that ended in the public execution of several Jews and conversos. The suspects had confessed under torture to murdering a child. Among the executed were Benito García, the converso who initially confessed to the murder. However, no body was ever found and there is no evidence that a child disappeared or was killed; because of contradictory confessions, the court had trouble coherently depicting how events possibly took pl ace. The child's very existence is also disputed.
ellauri185.html on line 154: The Holy Child has been called Spain's "most infamous case of blood libel". The incident took pl ace one year before the expulsion of the Jews from Spain, and the Holy Child was "possibly" used as a pretext for the expulsion.
ellauri185.html on line 156: On 16 November 1491, in the Brasero de la Dehesa (lit: "brazier in the meadow") in Ávila, all of the accused were handed over to the secular authorities and burned at the stake. Nine peopl e were executed - three Jews: Yusef Franco, Ça Franco, and Moses Abenamías; and six conversos: Alonso, Lope, García and Juan Franco, Juan de Ocaña and Benito García. As was customary, the sentences were read out at the auto-da-fé, and those of Yucef Franco and Benito García have been preserved.
ellauri185.html on line 166: In sostanza, il Cortegiano si presenta quale «moderno erede della pedagogia umanistica» in quanto l'uomo che vi si raffigura è «un uomo versatile e aperto, duttile e compl eto; è esperto di armi e di politica, ma sa anche di lettere, filosofia ed arti, è raffinato ma senza affettazione, è coraggioso e valente, ma senza ostentazione». In sostanza, è un trattato di pedagogia rivolto a chi vive nel mondo ristretto ed elitario delle corti.
ellauri185.html on line 228: 10.3.2022 klo 9.00 - Kikan Profiili: Se sano petskun mukaan pl äpl äpl äpl äpl ää
ellauri185.html on line 348: merely as a means. Even the morally worst peopl e have as
ellauri185.html on line 359: Everyone ought to follow the principl es whose being universal
ellauri185.html on line 361: principl es whose being universal laws everyone could rationally
ellauri185.html on line 373: Everyone ought to regard everyone with respect, that's all. Rispektiä kehiin kuten Saul Bellowin isoäitl Lauschilla. Rakastamisesta ei mitään puhetta. Oliko Parfit juutalainen? Ei vaan pikemminkin Olavi Pylkkänen. He was born in Chengdu, western China, where his parents, Jessie (nee Browne) and Norman Parfit practised preventive medicine in Christian missionary hospitals. Life partner Janet Richards believes Parfit had Asperger syndrome. He pl edged to donate at least 10% of his income to effective charities. No brittejä ei verot paljon paina. Ehkä se säästi charityrahat parturimenoista.
ellauri185.html on line 388: 34. Mixi meitä suositaan? Mixi meillä on täällä näin mukavaa, mixi alieneilla on niin paljon paskemmat pl aneetat että ne on tänne tuppaamassa koko ajan? Onko se osa jumalan suurta suunnitelmaa? Leibnizistä tää maailma oli paras koska ainoa. Fair enough. Carlo Rövelli, tuo pakana, ei hyväxy ajatusta että luonnonvakioiden säädöt olis suuren kellosepän kädestä. Universumi on yhtä vähän erityinen kuin keskimääräinen amerikkalainen, sanoo se. Mutta jos maailma olisi todennäköinen, eikö niitä pitäisi olla hirmu nippu, humauttaa Paul Davies. Jos jumala olisi todennäköinen, niitäkin pitäisi olla vastaavan suuri nippu, vastaavat pakanat. Kohta alkaa kellonpainot lentää.
ellauri185.html on line 394: A 2007 opinion piece "Taking Science on Faith" in The New York Times, generated controversy over its expl oration of the role of faith in scientific inquiry. Davies argued that the faith scientists have in the immutability of physical laws has origins in Christian theology, and that the claim that science is "free of faith" is "manifestly bogus."
ellauri185.html on line 396: While atheists Richard Dawkins and Victor J. Stenger have criticised Davies' public stance on science and religion, others, including the John Templ eton Foundation, have praised his work. The John Templ eton Foundation is a philanthropic organization that reflects the ideas of its founder, John Templ eton, who became wealthy via a career as a contrarian investor, and wanted to support progress in religious and spiritual knowledge, especially at the intersection of religion and science.
ellauri185.html on line 402: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/91/102111_Pinker_344.jpg/440px-102111_Pinker_344.jpg" width="20%" style="float:right;padding:1em" />
ellauri185.html on line 406: Steven Arthur Pinker (born September 18, 1954) is a Canadian-American cognitive psychologist, psycholinguist, popular science author and public intellectual. He is an advocate of evolutionary psychology and the computational theory of mind. Enlightenment Now (2018) uses social science data to show a general improvement of the human condition over recent history brought by Western reason, science and humanism pl us colonialism. Pinker on Hararin sielunveli, ne siteeraavat toisiaan. Pahuus on sitä mukaa vähentynyt kun jenkkihegemonia on vahvistunut. Vitun fariseuxet.
ellauri185.html on line 412: In 2004, Pinker was named in Time's "The 100 Most Influential Peopl e in the World Today", and in the years 2005, 2008, 2010, and 2011 in Foreign Policy's list of "Top 100 Global Thinkers". Pinker was also included in Prospect Magazine's top 10 "World Thinkers" in 2013. He has won awards from the American Psychological Association, the National Academy of Sciences, the Royal Institution, the Cognitive Neuroscience Society, and the American Humanist Association.
ellauri185.html on line 761: What was the pl ague that killed the firstborn of Egypt?
ellauri185.html on line 763: Who died in the tenth pl ague?
ellauri185.html on line 765: What were the 7 pl agues in Egypt?
ellauri185.html on line 773: What does the Bible say about pl agues?
ellauri185.html on line 781: In this scene from the biblical book of Exodus, Moses and Aaron (upper right) visit the pharaoh, who is mourning his son. The Egyptian ruler’s son had died from one of the pl agues sent by God to secure the Israelites’ release from Egypt. The gloom of the painting reflects the father’s intense grief.
ellauri185.html on line 783: Finally, the tenth and most horrific pl ague came, the killing for the first born child by the angel of death. To protect their first-born children, the Israelites marked their doors with lamb’s blood so the angel of death would pass over them. Thus the name Passover, which is “pesach” in Hebrew.
ellauri185.html on line 785: What was the pl ague that killed the firstborn of Egypt?
ellauri185.html on line 789: Who died in the tenth pl ague?
ellauri185.html on line 791: Killing of the firstborn was the best. In the 10th, and last pl ague, Moses tells the Pharaoh that all the firstborns in the land of Egypt would perish.
ellauri185.html on line 793: What were the 7, no 10, pl agues in Egypt?
ellauri185.html on line 794: The pl agues are: water turning to blood, frogs, lice, flies, livestock pestilence, boils, hail, locusts, darkness and the killing of firstborn children.
ellauri185.html on line 807: What does the Bible say about pl agues?
ellauri185.html on line 809: In II Sam. 24:15, God sends a pestilence that kills 70,000 Israelites because of David’s ill-conceived census. Jesus says in Luke 21:11 that there will be pl agues. Both Ezekiel and Jeremiah speak of God sending pl agues, for exampl e, in Ezek.
ellauri185.html on line 817: Israel. In Exodus, the nation of Israel is called God’s firstborn son. Solomon is also called “son of God”. Angels, just and pious men, and the kings of Israel are all called “sons of God.” In the New Testament of the Christian Bible, “Son of God” is appl ied to Jesus on many occasions.
ellauri185.html on line 834: One passage that offers some insight regarding birth defects can be found in John 9:2-3: "And his discipl es asked him, 'Rabbi, who sinned, this man or his parents, that he was born blind?' Jesus answered, 'It was not that this man sinned, or his parents, but that the works of God might be displ ayed in him.'" It is clear from these words of Jesus that birth defects are ultimately not due to the sin of the parents or child, but serve as part of God's pl an for our lives. If not for the defective person as such, then at least for the greater common good. Defective persons are prohibited from entering the holiest of the holy.
ellauri185.html on line 836: Despite all its disadvantages, inbreeding can also have a variety of advantages, such as ensuring a child produced from the mating contains, and will pass on, a higher percentage of its mother/father's genetics, reducing the recombination load, and allowing the expression of recessive advantageous phenotypes. Some species with a Hapl odipl oidy mating system depend on the ability to produce sons to mate with as a means of ensuring a mate can be found if no other male is available. It has been proposed that under circumstances when the advantages of inbreeding outweigh the disadvantages, preferential breeding within small groups could be promoted, potentially leading to speciation.
ellauri185.html on line 846: Instead, certain body odours are connected to human sexual attraction. Humans can make use of body odour subconsciously to identify whether a potential mate will pass on favourable traits to their offspring. Body odour may provide significant cues about the genetic quality, health and reproductive success of a potential mate. Body odour affects sexual attraction in a number of ways including through human biology, the menstrual cycle and fluctuating asymmetry. The olfactory membrane pl ays a role in smelling and subconsciously assessing another human's pheromones. It also affects the sexual attraction of insects and mammals. The major histocompatibility compl ex genes are important for the immune system, and appear to pl ay a role in sexual attraction via body odour. Studies have shown that body odor is strongly connected with attraction in heterosexual females. The women in one study ranked body odor as more important for attraction than “looks”. Humans may not simpl y depend on visual and verbal senses to be attracted to a possible partner/mate. That's hard science, no pseudo, mate!
ellauri185.html on line 855: In Leader's Bellow biography Vol 2, “Love and Strife,” the novel “Herzog” is published on the very first page and reaches No. 1 on the best-seller list, suppl anting John le Carré’s ‘The Spy Who Came In From the Cold.’ Never again would Bellow, about to turn 50 years old, lack for wealth, power, awards or flunkies to stand by him, ready to take his coat and do his bidding. The temptation for someone in his position was to become an insufferable, spoiled monster. And Bellow quickly gave in to temptation.
ellauri185.html on line 863: The irony in Bellow’s soul was that he craved love and experience, and learned to view peopl e coldly and clinically. The writer Amos Oz recalled most vividly from his friendship with Bellow an exchange that they shared privately about death. “I said I was hoping to die in my sleep, but Saul responded by saying that, on the contrary, he would like to die wide awake and fully conscious, because his death is such a crucial experience he wouldn’t want to miss it.”
ellauri188.html on line 32: APINOIDEN KANTTIINI play:none">Koijausta
ellauri188.html on line 60: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3f/Flag_of_Marquesas_Islands.svg/800px-Flag_of_Marquesas_Islands.svg.png" width="50%" />
ellauri188.html on line 68: The indigenous peopl e of the Marquesas suffered high death rates from diseases carried by Western expl orers, such as smallpox and measles, because none of them had any immunity to them. Not to mention syphilis and gonorrhea.
ellauri188.html on line 75: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6e/Marquesas_map-fr.svg/800px-Marquesas_map-fr.svg.png" height="450px" />
ellauri188.html on line 76: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/78/Marquesas-administrative.png/250px-Marquesas-administrative.png" height="450px" />
ellauri188.html on line 122: I have just returned from a seven months' trip to the Marquesas, and while the situation, due to the de- grading influences of so-called civilization by the whites, is serious enough from a humanitarian stand- point, I can hardly share, to its fullest extent, Mr. Wester's rather doleful outlook, either as regards the compl ete extinction of the true Marquesan or the ex tinetion of the breadfruit resulting from the disap pearance of the full-blooded native.
ellauri188.html on line 124: The present population of all the six inhabited islands of that group of eleven, numbers, according to Mr. Frank Varney, a long-time resident on Hivaon, about 1,000 or 1,200. Only a small proportion of these are pure bloods, most of that number being natives from the Tuamotus or the Society Islands, and many of them are half-bloods or quarter-bloods, Chinese features being very common. But I met many middle-aged, elderly and old, pure-blooded Mar quesans, a fine, self-respecting race, commanding our admiration and pity. I can not believe that all these peopl e, whom I saw in 1922 and 1923, will have vanished in 1930. It will take a longer time than that, perhaps only a few years longer, before the last pure blooded Marquesan steps off the stage. I am quite sure that Dr. Linton, of the Field Museum, and Dr. Handy, of Bishop Museum, Honolulu, both of whom have made special study of the Marquesans, will agree with me in this.
ellauri188.html on line 130: It is perhaps appropriate to describe briefly, in this connection, the agricultural conditions in Typee Vai, the valley on Nukuhiva made famous by Melville's classie "Typee." It will be remembered by those who have read his narrative that he escaped from his ship. in Taiohae Bay in 1842 and was held a prisoner for many months by the eannibals of Typee. At that time he figured the inhabitants of the valley as repre sented by about 2,000 souls, with perhaps 2,000 more in the neighboring valley of Houmi. A period of 80 years has elapsed (not a long time historically) be tween his sojourn there and my visit in 1922. In November of that year I found 44 peopl e in Typee, and 65 in Houmi, though from Pere Simeon Delmar, the charming and self-sacrificing priest at Taiohae, who is in close touch with all his peopl e, I learned. that the death rate in Typee had been normal for several years and that one or two families there had many children. I was astonished at the appearance of Typee Valley; for, from reading "White Shadows" and from
ellauri188.html on line 132: old peopl e, green from long drinking of kava-worth- less wretches in a huddle of huts on the shore. What I did see was an enormous valley, over a mile wide
ellauri188.html on line 135: But the most astonishing revelations were the (few to be sure) large and luxuriant pl antations of cocoanut palm, bananas and some breadfruit which checkered
ellauri188.html on line 136: the lower part. As I stood on the ridge between Happar Valley and Typee and looked down into the latter, I was not only amazed at seeing evidence of comparative prosperity, though in a limited area, where I expected utter- desolation, but I was deepl y impressed with the agricultural possibilities of this historic region.
ellauri188.html on line 140: I will venture to say that in ten years Tahiti, picturesque and romantic for so long a time, will have lost its charm because of the presence of hordes of low-caste Chinese and half-bloods. However unattractive this may be from the standpoint of the tourist and sentimentalist, there is no contradicting the fact that they will make these islands a thousand times more productive than would the pure-blooded native, and their skill and habits of appl ication will undoubtedly extend to the preservation of the breadfruit. The Chinese and half-blood Chinese are on all the Marquesan islands which are inhabited, and it will be to their financial interest as well as to the interest of their personal food suppl y, to preserve the breadfruit there as well as in the Societies. It is notable that the cocoanut and banana pl antations and papaye (papaw) groves in Typee at the time of my visit, were either owned or worked by Chinese or half-bloods (Chinese + Tahitian or Chinese + Marquesan).
ellauri188.html on line 292: Tästä näkee taas mixi en enää lue Herlinin Sanomia. Se ei vastaa näkemyxiäni. Pysyttelen mieluummin omassa kupl assani kupl a kurkussa.
ellauri188.html on line 297: Sano valas vedä 10x housut alas. Melville on kolonialistimoukka vaikkei mitenkään pahimmasta päästä, s. 152 tienoiila se haukkuu aika mojovasti muita länkkäreitä. Homotaipumuxet pääsee pintaan kirjan alussa: Hermanni ilostelee kun villit pettyivät lähetyssaarnaajan kauniin vaimon osoittauduttua naaraspuolisexi. Pettyisi kai Hermannikin moisesta. Hermanni nauraa kun villi päällikkövaimo näyttää tatuoidulle meri"karhulle" yhtä tatuoitua takapuoltaan. Mautonta! Hermanni pahastuu kun ranskiskolonialistit ennättivät ennen jenkkikolonialisteja julistamaan että markiisisaaret alkuasukkaineen kuuluivat nyt heille. Mitä vittua??? Kuuluuko Transnistria Moldovalle? Kuuluuko Moldova Ukrainalle? Kuuluuko Ukraina Venäjälle? Nää on kuin toisiansa suuruusjärjestyksessä ahmaisevat petokalat. Kuuluuko mikään maapl änttyrä millekään apinoiden lössille? Ei kuulu teille! Kyllä se nyt vähän kuuluu, sanoo frakkiin ja silinteriin sonnustautunut Kummeli. Mutta Hermanni oli kyllä pannut merkille että Havaijilla jenkkien ja saarnaajien läsnäolo oli saanut 25 vuodessa aikaan pelkkää pahaa. Pearl Harborista puhumattakaan.
ellauri188.html on line 341: – Me emme ole tarkistaneet koko rekisteriä, mutta niiden havaintojen perusteella, joita olemme muutaman kerran siellä käytyämme tehneet, voidaan sanoa, että kyse ei ole mistään yksittäisistä ongelmista. Sieltä on löytyneet kaikki länsijohtajatkin, Sauli Niinistöä myöden, pl us Kiinan Xi, tosin väärin kirjoitettuna.
ellauri188.html on line 415: Josh's other projects included the horror-thriller Child of Darkness, Child of Light, an adaptation of Paterson's novel Virgin, a tale of two Catholic virgin schoolgirls, that folded when they were both found pregnant under mysterious and supernatural circumstances. To avoid being caught red "handed" Lucas relocated to Australia to pl ay the hot "headed" American cousin Luke McGregor opposite Andrew Clarke and Guy Pearce in the first season of the family western Snowy River: The McGregor Saga. Lucas appeared in all 13 episodes of the first season, but claimed in a later interview that despite the friendly reception by Rhonda Byrne, he was homesick for the United States, and his character was killed off in the second episode of season 2.
ellauri188.html on line 417: The second part of his career began with a lead role in the British rowing film Big Blue (released in the US as Miracle and as Debacle at Oxford), in which he pl ayed a hotshot Navy rower who recruited another American, "Toby", to help US win our annual round Nuku Hiva boat race with the Frenchies.
ellauri188.html on line 418: He also appeared in an off-Broadway production of Terrence McNally's slightly controversial Corpus Christi killers, a retelling of the Passion Fruit, with the Jesus character (named Joshua) and his discipl es ALL being gay. Lucas pl ayed the role of Judas as a gay predator.
ellauri188.html on line 420: Right before the pl ay was to open, Lucas was mugged and beaten "on his way to the theater" for "dress rehearsal". He pl ayed the role of Judas with bloody bandages across his broken nose and black eyes. The audience thought the bandages were part of the pl ay.
ellauri188.html on line 477: VIDEO
ellauri189.html on line 33: Steppenwolf play:none">Steppailua
ellauri189.html on line 41: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri189.html on line 49: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/88/Ukraine-Volhyn-de.png" width="50%" />
ellauri189.html on line 66: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f3/Antoni_Malczewski_portret.JPG/220px-Antoni_Malczewski_portret.JPG" />
ellauri189.html on line 77: "Maria" was hailed by the younger generation as one of the first authentic literary products of Polish romanticism (the adherents of the so-called Warsaw Classicism were, on the contrary, horrified by the dark pl ot and the author’s preference for “provincial” words and expressions). Malczewski was then already in poor health and, before a year had passed, in May 1826, he died – impoverished and disgraced because of his affair with a hysterical married woman (whom he was supposed to heal by means of mesmerism – after his death she returned to her husband).
ellauri189.html on line 79: In 1825 Antoni Malczewski published a long poem, Maria (Marya: A Tale of the Ukraine), which constitutes his only contribution to Polish poetry but occupies a permanent pl ace there as a widely imitated exampl e of the so-called Polish-Ukrainian poetic school. In the poem, Wacław, a young husband, goes to fight the Tatars and, after routing the raiders, hurries home to his wife, Maria. All he finds is a cold corpse. Yeah, great. Oh fuck. What's the use. The poem makes use of diversified rhythms and carefully chosen rhymes; and its Byronic hero, as well as its picture of Ukraine as a land of sombre charm, assured Malczewski both popularity and critical appl ause.
ellauri189.html on line 97: “Simpl e was his bow, short his salutation; however, he seemed different from
ellauri189.html on line 102: However, in Maria the tensions arising from differences in “class” are not taken up. Malczewski investigates man’s existential pl ight in connection with the “stigma” (as would Norwid put it) that has been imprinted on man by his “natural” surroundings (as we will see, the Cossack represents man before self-alienation,
ellauri189.html on line 109: more important than its very Byronic pl ot, of which I will give only a short outline. The son of a wealthy magnate has fallen in love with the daughter of a petty nobleman (miecznik, the “sword-bearer”, a purely nominal provincial
ellauri189.html on line 129: landscape. Communing with the monotonous pl ain that extends as far as the horizon, where it melts into the heaven, the author discovers that “mood” (Heidegger’s Gestimmtsein) is the fundamental human mode of being-in-the-world. The level pl ain and the hemisphere (earth and heaven) constitute a spatial totality that is self-enclosed: Being combines flatness with the curve of the hemisphere, the linear with the cyclical perspective (from an empirical point of view only half of its orbit is visible to man though he can of course turn around to see the rest of it):
ellauri189.html on line 138: – arriving where the pl ain seemed to end, but again in a new flatness bends – a bright cloud in front of them, they looked like aerie knights to the eye.)
ellauri189.html on line 141: dome with the terrestrial pl ain. In this space that is both boundless and hermetic (when we attempt to translate existential qualities that are experienced
ellauri189.html on line 155: A pl owin through the ragged sky and up the cloudy draw
ellauri189.html on line 173: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri189.html on line 180: (And when they have reached the pl ain – where the sun has rolled his immense
ellauri189.html on line 199: The centre of our pl anetary system is the visible sign of the infinity of immanence and contains the cyclical essence of being, not merely indicating this con-dition, but also embodying it: this celestial body is subject to an infinite movement without apparent linear direction. But the stages of the sun’s voyage could also be interpreted as stages of human life (birth, youth, maturity, old age) and this circumstance inclines man to perceive a similarity between a celestial body and a feeling sublunary body (does man deceive himself, thinking it a bond of
ellauri189.html on line 214: The boundless steppe of the Ukraine turns out to be a cage with invisible bars. Man appears at first sight to be free, without apparent goal roaming over the pl ain of life, being a lord of the steppe, “a king of the wilderness” (“król pustyni”), or tries to create in a premeditated manner his own future, deciding – by the way – on the fate of his fellow men (the source of unceasing conflicts). However, in the latter case he often unwittingly obeys the voice of his own wild, unruly nature. The ambivalence of this situation seems to be intimately connected with the concept of romantic irony. Man possesses the ability to objectify his passions, i.e. he can expl ain them psychologically, by means of a chain of causes and effects, but he still remains the slave of this volitional nature that constitutes his innermost self, always and ever receding (like the horizon of the Ukrainian pl ain) when he tries to catch it (the idea of the Unconscious does not really expl ain this “schizophrenic” state of mind – it merely affirms man’s essential homelessness: I am myself, when I realize that my self eternally escapes me). - I can relate to that, says the Russian tank driver sitting stuck in the Ukrainian mud.
ellauri189.html on line 218: on the infinite pl ain of being, but the ultimate catastrophe (wiping out both
ellauri189.html on line 248: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8f/Jacek_Malczewski_-_Maria_Bal_%281909%29.jpg/123px-Jacek_Malczewski_-_Maria_Bal_%281909%29.jpg" />
ellauri189.html on line 250: Jadwiga Maria Kinga Bal (Balowa) of Zaleszczyki, née Brunicka (July 26, 1879 – January 1, 1955) was a Polish baroness and a lifelong muse of Jacek Malczewski, considered Poland's national painter. She served as the live model for a series of his symbolic portrayals of women, as well as nude studies and mythological beings. Most were compl eted before the interwar period when Poland had not yet achieved independence.
ellauri189.html on line 258: Aga rated it it was ok Mar 22 , I love all the motifs, the atmosphere and the time period. Fascinated by Byron, Malczewski used compl icated narration, an odd sequence of events, blanks, ambiguities and puzzles in his work.
ellauri189.html on line 307: Voihan sitä ajatella jeesusmaisesti läheisikseen kaikki ihmiset maailmassa. Kaikki ovat yhtä arvokkaita, minkä vuoksi tuntuu järjettömältä tapella yhden maantieteellisesti mielivaltaisesti rajatun maapl äntin ja sinne sattumalta asettautuneiden ihmisten puolesta, koska "vihollisen" puolella on yhtä arvokkaita ihmisiä. Miksi tappaa satunnaisesti toisia toisten puolesta, kun kuka tahansa olisi voinut olla lähimmäisesi. Nimim. Tolstoi.
ellauri189.html on line 320: Kyse ei ole siis suinkaan vain maapl äntistä vaan elintasosta vapaasti kehittyvässä demokratiassa tai joutumisesta totalitarismin alle kaalisoppakuurille.
ellauri189.html on line 324: Ei kansakunnan koti ole mikä tahansa maapl äntti, vaan se kokonaisuus, missä eletään, rakastetaan ja vanhennutaan. Jokainen haluaa puolustaa vanhainkotiaan, ja siksikin siihen on kaikilla oikeus - ja velvollisuus. Hyökkäävä eli väkivallan aloittava vihollinen on rikollinen, eikä mikään lähimmäinen. Ei kukaan sano raiskausta yrittävällekään, että "mites on päivä menny?", silloin kun tilanne on päällä. Mieluumminkin "onxe edes siellä kun ei mitään tunnu". On täysin järjetöntä asettaa hyökkääjää ja puolustajaa samalle viivalle, kun kyse on totaalisista vastakohdista. Näin sanoi jo vaippahousuinen Mahatma Gandhikin, on kirjahyllyssä se kirja.
ellauri189.html on line 402: Suomen Turussa yritti israelilainen perhe jenkkivedätystä, johon kuului pyramidihuijaus ja kuolleen meren saasteiden myynti vanhuxille tunkemalla kynnyxeltä sisään väkipakolla pl us verokavalluxet päälle. Toinen samanlainen karvahäntä koittaaa huijata saman firman reppuselässä netissä:
ellauri189.html on line 406: SEACRET is the exclusive name bohind the luxurious skin care and spa product lino, based on salt water. mud and ancient perhaps even mystical minerals, found in only one pl ace on earth: the Doad Sea!
ellauri189.html on line 422: Dead Sea is the lowest point on the pl anet and one of the most unique environments around the world. It lies on the borders of Jordan, the West Bank and Israel. Known for its high-density waters and mineral rich soils, the Dead Sea is visited by a large number of tourists from all over the world. Its soils contain minerals such as potassium, magnesium, calcium, and salt.These minerals are used in cosmetics, chemical products such as industrial salts and are even used in table salts for home use.
ellauri189.html on line 424: The once mineral-rich Dead Sea has shrunk to the size of a small and pitiful pond. Water levels have been dropping at a rate of 1 meter per annum. Currently it lies 1,300 feet below sea level and if the rate of decline continues it will reach 1,800 feet below sea level before the end of the century. This sharp decline is due to the over-expl oitation of its minerals, the use of its water for desalination, and the large increase in agriculture in both Jordan and Israel.
ellauri189.html on line 426: Many environmental casualties have been associated with the rapid retreat in the shoreline of the Dead Sea. An exampl e is the emergence of sinkholes. An older and well attested phenomenon in the area is the emergence of assholes. Many residential areas and roads around the Dead Sea have been destroyed by sinkholes because of shitholes. Sinkholes are natural depressions in the Earth’s surface caused by the chemical dissolution of nutrients in the soil. These sinkholes endanger the lives of locals and the fun of tourists alike.
ellauri189.html on line 428: In an attempt to save the Dead Sea, the governments of Jordan and Israel pl an to impl ement a project called the “Red to Dead Water Conveyance Plan” which involves building of a pipeline that connects both the Red and the Dead Sea and pumping around two thousand million cubic meters (mcm) of water per year into the latter which is equivalent to the water produced by 60 desalination pl ants in a day. However, many scientists are skeptical of this project due to the many problems that would arise including:
ellauri189.html on line 438: The Jordan River is a shadow of what it once was. The river acts as the main water source for Jordan, Israel, and the West Bank. As a result, 90% of the fresh water that repl enishes it is diverted to agriculture. Another problem facing it is pollution from agricultural and wastewater run-offs. About 50% of the agricultural run-offs from the surrounding areas are dumped into the river which has caused its water levels to drop dramatically.
ellauri189.html on line 440: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/8c/The_Dead_Sea_1972-2011_-_NASA_Earth_Observatory.jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri189.html on line 444: In December 2013, Israel, Jordan and the Palestinian Authority signed an agreement for laying a water pipeline to link the Red Sea with the Dead Sea. The pipeline would be 180 km (110 mi) long and is estimated to take up to five years to compl ete. In January 2015 it was reported that the level of water was dropping by 1 m (3 ft) a year.
ellauri189.html on line 446: On 27 November 2016, it was announced that the Jordanian government was shortlisting five consortia to impl ement the project. Jordan's ministry of Water and Irrigation said that the $100 million first phase of the project would begin construction in the first quarter of 2018, and would be compl eted by 2021.
ellauri189.html on line 465: MLM on pyramidihuijaus 21. vuosisadan kielellä. Plus ca change, pl us c'est la meme chose. Esinahkakukkulat ei muutu mixikään. Juutalaiset harrasti pyramidihuijausta jo Egyptissä. Pintselsabad, sutihännät, oli Edgar Walterin virolainen kuvakirja rohutirtsin lisäxi. Siansaparot, karvakärsät, terveisiä luvatusta maasta. Kuolleen meren suolaa naamaan ja mutaa tukkaan, valmistuskustannuxet olemattomat. Levitystä hoitelevat hölmöt toimii maxumiehinä.
ellauri189.html on line 469: To join Seacret as an affiliate, you are required to pay a registration fee of $49. By paying this fee, you gain access to a business calendar, a back office, a repl icated website, and a guide to the compensation pl an. However, this fee is not inclusive of the products, and it also does not qualify you as an active member.
ellauri189.html on line 472: Only active members, who are referred to as Seacret agents, can earn all the commissions provided in the compensation pl an. There are several types of commissions that you can earn:
ellauri189.html on line 474: Retail commissions are paid out Seacret agents weekly and reflect both your offline product order dorms and your website orders. You don’t have to be qualified or active to be eligible for this commission. Orders pl aced by customers have to be through your repl icated website or via order forms that you submit. This type of commission is obtained from the difference between the wholesale price and retail price of the product.
ellauri189.html on line 485: There are fourteen ranks in total in the Seacret compensation pl an.
ellauri189.html on line 501: To attain the pl atinum rank, you have to generate 20,000 BV on both sides of your binary group and recruit two bronze ranked agents (one for each leg of your binary group).
ellauri189.html on line 507: For this rank, you have to generate at least 200,000 BV on both sides of your binary group and recruit two pl atinum ranked agents (one for each leg of your binary group).
ellauri189.html on line 564: In the 1920s, Charles Ponzi carried out this scheme and became well known throughout the United States because of the huge amount of money that he took in. His original scheme was based on the legitimate arbitrage of international repl y coupons for postage stamps, but he soon began diverting new investors' money to make payments to earlier investors and to himself. Unlike earlier similar schemes, Ponzi's gained considerable press coverage both within the United States and internationally both while it was being perpetrated and after it collapsed – this notoriety eventually led to the type of scheme being named after him.
ellauri189.html on line 570: With little or no legitimate earnings, Ponzi schemes require a constant flow of new money to survive. When it becomes hard to recruit new investors, or when large numbers of existing investors cash out, these schemes tend to collapse. As a result, most investors end up losing all or much of the money they invested. In some cases, the operator of the scheme may simpl y disappear with the money.
ellauri189.html on line 600: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri189.html on line 606: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri189.html on line 634: Atiende nuestras supl icas
ellauri189.html on line 658: Ghasel, även kallad ghazel eller ghazal, är en diktform i den arabiska och persiska litteraturen vars bärande idé ofta är den längtande kärleken. Det mest kända exempl et i svensk litteratur är En ghasel av Gustaf Fröding. Ghasel handlar ofta om den älskades ("vännens") skönhet, 'ansikte och kropp' och har ett bestämt rimschema och versmått. Ghasel som diktform är känd hos araber från förislamisk tid. Exempelvis Omro el Kays är känd för denna typ av dikter, i vilka han beskrev sin musa Layla. De persiska poeterna Sadi och Hafez är framstående användare av ghazalen.
ellauri189.html on line 664: En ghasel är en arabisk, förislamisk diktform som har spridit sig till språken persiska, turkiska och urdu. Den består av 5-20 tvåradiga strofer, där versraderna i första strofen rimmar parvis. Därefter återkommer detta rim som avslutning av varje strof enligt schemat: AA, BA, CA, DA osv. Diktformens styrka ligger i att den kan tolkas symboliskt på flera pl an samtidigt.
ellauri189.html on line 719: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri189.html on line 726: The fact is that some Pashtun tribes have a tradition of being the peopl e of Israel (Bene Israel), meaning they descended from our father Yaakov. It is even told that the Afghan king once asked the Afghan Jews from which tribe they are, when they answered they don’t know the king said that the Pashtuns do, and that the king is from the tribe of Benyamin. In particular, I heard myself from Pashtuns from the tribes of Lewani, Benyamin, Afridi, Shinwari and more, that their grandfathers told them they are Bene Israel, and it is well known that this tradition is spread through most (or all) of the Pashtuns tribes.
ellauri189.html on line 728: Some Pashtuns, especially from young generations, are doubting that this is true. In this article I’ll expl ore the possibilities of how this tradition could have originated. From this expl oration it will become clear that doubting the truthfulness of this tradition is irrational. I would also outline some common traditions of Pashtuns and Jews, some of them are based on the Torah, which further confirm that this tradition is true and that Pashtuns are really Bene Israel. I’ll then say a few words about DNA testing and finally talk about the impl ications of this tradition.
ellauri189.html on line 732: There are 2 possibilities for how this tradition could have originated. The simpl e one is that it is true. The more compl ex one is that it is false. If it is false, it had to originate somehow. So maybe
ellauri189.html on line 736: According to this expl anation for the origin of this tradition, at some generation A, some Pashtuns decided they are Bene Israel. Then they convinced or forced the other Pashtuns, although no one has ever heard of it before. Time had passed, and at generation B the tradition was already so acceptable, that not only many (probably most) of the Pashtuns believed it, but they compl etely forgot that once, at generation A, some Pashtuns invented it and convinced or forced others it is true. Very like the way some zealot Jews in generation A convinced others that their windy god was the only one. But this is irrational.
ellauri189.html on line 740: We previously outlined taxonomy of all the possible expl anations for the origin of the tradition that Pashtuns are Bene Israel, assuming it is false. Because all of the expl anations are irrational, we must conclude that the tradition is true, and at some generation A the Pashtuns really lived in the land of Israel and knew for a fact they are Bene Israel. They were then taken to Afghanistan and the area around it (according to the bible, they were taken by the Assyrians), where they lived and passed this tradition from generation to generation.
ellauri189.html on line 742: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri189.html on line 751: Not eating sea-creatures such as lobsters, shrimps, and crabs, and animals like camels and horses, and meat with cheese. These are, in fact, not Kosher (cannot be eaten) according to the Torah given to the peopl e of Israel by God through Moses.
ellauri189.html on line 763: In Weddings there’s a piece of fabric hanging above the marrying coupl e. In Hebrew it is called Hupa. In Pashto it is called Dolaye,
ellauri189.html on line 765: In some Pashtuns weddings, the bride breaks a glass (in particular, I heard it done by Pashtuns in Kandahar). In Jew’s weddings the groom breaks it. This is actually a relatively new tradition that Jews do for the remembrance of the destroyed Templ e, so it is likely that Pashtuns heard of this tradition after they have already been exiled and added it to their other Israeli traditions.
ellauri189.html on line 771: Other evidence includes names of pl aces in Afghanistan and Kashmir that resemble ancient towns in Israel that are mentioned in the bible. And some say that until not so long ago, one of the names of the Amu Darya (River Oxus) was Gozan, which is mentioned as one of the pl aced the damn Assyrians exiled the peopl e of Israel to. There are also the names of tribes that resemble the children of Yaakov (the names of the Israeli tribes), like Lewani (Lewi), Daftali (Naftali), Yusufzai (children of Yussuf-Yossef), Rubanni (Reuven), Afridi (Efrayim) etc. Also parts of the Pashtunwali resemble some parts of the Torah.
ellauri189.html on line 773: Some Pashtuns also have Jewish artifacts. For exampl e, I heard first hand from a Lewani Pashtun that his grandmother had these jewelries: Afghan Taaweez or lockets to be worn around the neck, with Israeli star on them.
ellauri189.html on line 781: A better expl anation is that DNA testing is over-hyped, and it will take some more development until we could rely on it. Commercial companies and researchers would surely disagree, but they have a personal interest. I don´t.
ellauri189.html on line 783: Because we showed that it is basically impossible to believe that Pashtuns are not Bene Israel, DNA is not necessary for proving this tradition. It can only be used for proving another Pashtuns tradition – that Pashtuns did not mix with other peopl e, but I personally think that given the current knowledge of DNA and mutation frequency, and how much the environment affects it, any result of a DNA test could be debated.
ellauri189.html on line 787: Some Pashtuns think that because Pashto is not a Semetic language it means Pashtuns are not Semetic, but it isn’t a strong enough evidence to contradict what we said above. To contradict what we said one has to expl ain how this tradition originated, and it is impossible.
ellauri189.html on line 797: Peopl e who kept the religion of Moses and Israel (what is called now Judaism) all along. They are Bene Israel because non-Israelis who married them, accepted the religion too, and Moses taught Bene Israel that if someone accepts that religion and goes through a certain process (called Giyur in Hebrew), he becomes an Israeli himself (Moses’ own wife, Sipora, was actually a convert).
ellauri189.html on line 799: Peopl e who are descendents of Bene Israel who didn’t keep the religion of Moses and Israel, but didn’t mix with other peopl e.
ellauri189.html on line 801: The faces of all the peopl e who claim they are Bene Israel prove they mixed, and they generally do not deny that they mixed. Jews mixed too, but they kept Judaism, so they fall in to the first category (Jews who married non-Jews were thrown out of the Jewish community and were considered dead to them. This is still true for today’s religious Jews, and until not long ago, all Jews were religious). On the other hand, those other peopl e who both mixed and did not keep Judaism, although they are descendants of Bene Israel to some extent, they are not Bene Israel themselves, as they do not fall into either category.
ellauri189.html on line 811: Impl ications for Pashtuns
ellauri189.html on line 815: First, being Israelis is a source of pride. It means you are the children of Prophet Yaakov. It means you were the first to believe in the one and only God, more that 1500 years before the Arabs. Your ancestors prayed to the one and only God while the Arabs were compl ete pagans, bowing to all sorts of idols who don’t have power over anything. It is also very likely that other prophets are your forefathers. For exampl e, it is very likely you are descendants of Prophet Moses himself if you are Lewani. Your great great… great grandfather might have been Moses’ best student – prophet Yehoshua if you are Afridi, etc. Your ancestors saw with their eyes what God did to Egypt – stuff that no other nation but the Egyptians themselves have witnessed. They heard God talking to them on Mount Sinai, etc.
ellauri189.html on line 821: In case you encounter Jews on the internet, you should know there are 3 high-level categories of peopl e who call themselves Jews. The first is the religious Jews, who are keeping the Tora, and as far as I can tell, have a culture very similar to Pashtuns´ culture. Until about 200 years ago, all Jews were in this category.
ellauri189.html on line 823: There are also secular Jews, who don´t keep the Tora and whose culture is not Jewish, but mostly American, and some are really deep in the disgusting western pop-culture. The majority of the secular Jews who live in the holy land are not mixing with other peopl e, so even though they don´t keep the Jewish religion, they are Jewish. On the other hand, there are the secular Jews who live abroad, mainly in the US - most of them, unfortunately, are mixing with other nations. While some of them are now Jews, if they continue like this, in 1-2 generations, none of them would be considered Jewish, and real Jews wouldn´t be able to marry them any more.
ellauri189.html on line 825: And finally we have non-Jews who call themselves Jews, like the Reformists, or Conservatives, and like peopl e who went through Orthodox conversions but didn´t think about keeping the Tora for a second, yet they lied and made a big show to make rabies think they do intend to keep it. They are not Jewish. All they do by calling themselves Jews is confusing peopl e.
ellauri189.html on line 829: So if you are a Pashtun and you are comfortable with the fact that we are you and you are us, you are invited to our facebook group – The Peopl e of Israel – Pashtuns and Jews. If you are a Jew and you are excited you are welcome too of course.
ellauri189.html on line 835: Second, if a non-Israeli marries an Israeli woman, they are not really married according to Halacha (Jewish law), but if he is Israeli from the 10 tribes, then they are really married and she must get divorced according to Halacha if she wants to marry an Israeli. On this topic, the Talmud says in Yevamot 16: “If a non-Jew married an Israeli woman according to Halacha, we are concerned that they might actually be married, because he might be from the 10 tribes”. The Talmud then asks: “But when someone is in front of us and we don’t know who he is, we assume he came from the majority of peopl e, and the majority of peopl e are not from the 10 tribes, so we shouldn’t be concerned”. The Talmud then says that this is only true in their land – the land where the 10 tribes live, because over there they are the majority. So the Talmud believes that the 10 tribes are still the majority in their land. If they had mixed this would not have been the case, unless there was only a little mixing going on.
ellauri189.html on line 837: Finally, we have the Mishna in Sanhedrin 10:3, where Rabbi Akiva said the 10 tribes don’t have a part in the next world, while Rabbi Eliezer said they have. Rashi simpl y said that they talked about the generation that was exiled, but even Rabb Akiva admits that their descendants surely have a part in the next world. There’s no doubt this is the case, otherwise Ribbie Akiva would be in a disagreement with Yehezkel, Yishaaya and Jeremaya, and we know he can’t be.
ellauri189.html on line 846: The writer earns his living as a software developer, and spends his free time trying hard to bring the peopl e of Israel closer to God and to each other. He has huge love and respect for the Pashtun nation and he is 100% sure that Pashtuns are his brothers, Bene Israel, the children of prophets Avraham, Yishak and Yaakov.
ellauri189.html on line 848: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri190.html on line 33: Irtopäitä play:none">Sotahistoriaa
ellauri190.html on line 43: VIDEO
ellauri190.html on line 44: VIDEO
ellauri190.html on line 45: VIDEO
ellauri190.html on line 52: The Kazakhs (also spelled Qazaqs; Kazakh: sg. қазақ, qazaq, [qɑˈzɑq] (audio speaker iconlisten), pl . қазақтар, qazaqtar, [qɑzɑqˈtɑr] (audio speaker iconlisten); the English name is transliterated from Russian; Russian: казахи) are a Turkic ethnic group who mainly inhabit the Ural Mountains and northern parts of Central and East Asia (largely Kazakhstan, but also parts of Russia, Uzbekistan, Mongolia and China) in Eurasia. Kazakh identity is of medieval origin and was strongly shaped by the foundation of the Kazakh Khanate between 1456 and 1465, when several tribes under the rule of the sultans Janibek and Kerei departed from the Khanate of Abu'l-Khayr Khan in hopes of forming a powerful khanate of their own. Other notable Kazakh khans include Ablai Khan and Abul Khair Khan.
ellauri190.html on line 67: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3e/Kazakhstan_%28orthographic_projection%29.svg/500px-Kazakhstan_%28orthographic_projection%29.svg.png" width="50%" />
ellauri190.html on line 76: It is unclear when peopl e other than the Brodnici and Berladnici (which had a Romanian origin with large slavic influences) began to settle in the lower reaches of major rivers such as the Don and the Dnieper after the demise of the Khazar state. Their arrival is unlikely before the 13th century, when the Mongols broke the power of the Cumans, who had assimilated the previous population on that territory. It is known that new settlers inherited a lifestyle that long pre-dated their presence, including that of the Turkic Cumans and the Circassian Kassaks.
ellauri190.html on line 92: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2e/Cumania_%281200%29_eng.png/220px-Cumania_%281200%29_eng.png" width="50%" />
ellauri190.html on line 101: The Cumans (or Kumans), also known as Polovtsians or Polovtsy (pl ural only, from the Russian exonym Половцы), were a Turkic nomadic peopl e comprising the western branch of the Cuman–Kipchak confederation. The Cumans were fierce and formidable nomadic warriors of the Eurasian Steppe who exerted an enduring influence on the medieval Balkans. They were numerous, culturally sophisticated, and militarily powerful.
ellauri190.html on line 103: Many eventually settled to the west of the Black Sea, influencing the politics of Kievan Rus', the Galicia–Volhynia Principality, the Golden Horde Khanate, the Second Bulgarian Empire, the Kingdom of Serbia, the Kingdom of Hungary, Moldavia, the Kingdom of Georgia, the Byzantine Empire, the Empire of Nicaea, the Latin Empire and Wallachia, with Cuman immigrants becoming integrated into each country's elite. The Cumans also pl ayed a prominent role in the Fourth Crusade and in the creation of the Second Bulgarian Empire. Cuman and Kipchak tribes joined politically to create the Cuman–Kipchak confederation.
ellauri190.html on line 105: The Cuman language is attested in some medieval documents and is the best-known of the early Turkic languages.[6]: 186 The Codex Cumanicus was a linguistic manual written to help Catholic missionaries communicate with the Cuman peopl e. Cuman tarkoitti blondia.
ellauri190.html on line 107: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c4/Ukraine-Dyke_Pole.png/250px-Ukraine-Dyke_Pole.png" width="50%" />
ellauri190.html on line 113: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5b/Khazarfall1.png/250px-Khazarfall1.png" />
ellauri190.html on line 121: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/09/003_Description_of_all_the_Russian_state-dwelling_peopl es.jpg/220px-003_Description_of_all_the_Russian_state-dwelling_peopl es.jpg" />
ellauri190.html on line 142: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Muromian-map.png/375px-Muromian-map.png" width="50%" />
ellauri190.html on line 153: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4e/Kievan-rus-1015-1113-%28en%29.png/440px-Kievan-rus-1015-1113-%28en%29.png" width="50%" />
ellauri190.html on line 191: At the start of the 15th century, the Golden Horde began to fall apart. By 1466, it was being referred to simpl y as the "Great Horde", after that, just "That Horde". The Crimean Khanate and the Kazakh Khanate, the last remnants of the Golden Horde, survived until 1783 and 1847 respectively.
ellauri190.html on line 207: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/2d/Muscovy_1390_1525.png" width="50%" />
ellauri190.html on line 212: The Cossacks are a predominantly East Slavic Orthodox Christian peopl e group originating in the steppes of Eastern Europe. They were a semi-nomadic and semi-militarized peopl e, who, while under the nominal suzerainty of various Eastern European states at the time, such as the Russian Empire or the Polish–Lithuanian Commonwealth, were allowed a great degree of self-governance in exchange for military service. The Cossacks were particularly noted for holding democratic traditions (not republican).
ellauri190.html on line 214: Early "Proto-Cossack" groups are generally reported to have come into existence within what is now Ukraine in the 13th century as the influence of Cumans grew weaker, although some have ascribed their origins to as early as the mid-8th century. Some historians suggest that the Cossack peopl e were of mixed ethnic origin, descending from Russians, Ukrainians, Belarusians, Turks, Tatars, and others who settled or passed through the vast Steppe. Some Turkologists, however, argue that Cossacks are descendants of the native Cumans of Ukraine, who had lived there long before the Mongol invasion. But who knows, and as long as no one does, you are free to believe what you like.
ellauri190.html on line 222: The Zaporozhian Cossacks lived on the Pontic–Caspian steppe below the Dnieper Rapids (Ukrainian: za porohamy), also known as the Wild Fields. The group became well known, and its numbers increased greatly between the 15th and 17th centuries. The Zaporozhian Cossacks pl ayed an important role in European geopolitics, participating in a series of conflicts and alliances with the Polish–Lithuanian Commonwealth, Russia, and the Ottoman Empire.
ellauri190.html on line 224: The Zaporozhians gained a reputation for their raids against the Ottoman Empire and its vassals, although they also sometimes pl undered other neighbors. Their actions increased tension along the southern border of the Polish–Lithuanian Commonwealth. Low-level warfare (aka cold war) took pl ace in those territories for most of the period of the Commonwealth (1569–1795).
ellauri190.html on line 226: They inhabited sparsely populated areas in the Dnieper, Don, Terek, and Ural river basins, and pl ayed an important role in the historical and cultural development of both Ukraine and Russia. The various Cossack groups were organized along military lines, with large autonomous groups called hosts. Each host had a territory consisting of affiliated villages called stanitsa. The Cossack way of life persisted into the twentieth century, though the sweeping societal changes of the Russian Revolution disrupted Cossack society as much as any other part of Russia; many Cossacks migrated to other parts of Europe following the establishment of the Soviet Union, while others remained and assimilated into the Communist state. Cohesive Cossack-based units were organized and fought for both Germany and the Soviet Union during World War II.
ellauri190.html on line 230: In the 2002 Russian census, 140,028 peopl e declared Cossack ethnicity, while 67,573 peopl e identified as Cossack in the 2010 census. Between 3.5 and 5.0 million peopl e associate themselves with the Cossack cultural identity across the world;[citation needed], making them the largest Slavic group without their own state. Cossack organizations operate in Russia, Kazakhstan, Ukraine, Belarus, and the United States.
ellauri190.html on line 235: The name “Ukraine” can be found already in some chronicles dated by the 12th century. Most likely, it is related to the word “krai” (край), meaning “border.” In the early Middle Ages, peopl e who lived in what is now Ukraine called their country “Rus,” and themselves “Rusy,” “Rusychy,” or “Rusyny.” Ei pie sekoittaa sanaan "ryssä", joka tarkoittaa aiivan eri porukkaa. Ryssät aivan törkeesti käyttää samaa sanaa izestään. Sellasta kulttuurista appropriointia.
ellauri190.html on line 239: During the 9th century, “Varangians” (Vikings) began to serve as a kind of Praetorian Guard to the East Roman emperors. Tästä kertoo jännittävästi Mika Waltarin historiallinen romaani Mikael Karvajalka, joka taitaa olla meillä jossakin. To reach the city of Constantinopl e, they sailed from what today is called the Gulf of Finland up the Neva river to the lakes Ladoga and Ilmen and then to the Western Dvina and the Dnipro, going all the way down to the Black Sea. By the mid-9th century, they settled around and in Kyiv and founded their own dynasty of the descendants of Rurik. A grandson of Rurik, Svyatoslav (Sfendosleif) greatly expanded his realm to the east and south, while his mother Olga (Helga) traveled to Constantinopl e and was baptized Christian. Svyatoslav’s son, Volodymyr (Waldemar) married a daughter of the Eastern Roman emperor, was baptized, and baptized all his subjects in the year 988. (Back then, the city of Moscow, or the country now known as Russia – Россия – did not even exist, so there!) Over the next centuries, the “Rurikids” gradually lost their Scandinavian identity, marrying women of the Slavic, Hungarian, Greek, and Turkic ethnicities.
ellauri190.html on line 243: By the 11th century, Kyivan Rus was a huge European power. Kyiv was bigger than London or Paris. The city had numerous buildings made of brick, including churches. It also had many private and public bathhouses, like Constantinopl e (and unlike Western European cities of the time). The realm, stretching from the White Sea to the north to the Black Sea to the south and from the steppes of the Don to the east to what is now eastern Poland to the west, was divided into many feudal fiefs, but the authority of the monarch in Kyiv was nonetheless absolute.
ellauri190.html on line 245: On Easter Sunday of the year 1168, a savage warlord from the Volga region, called Andrei (cynically nicknamed Bogolubsky, i.e. “God-lover”) and his horde of Finno-Ugric tribesmen (damn those Finns!) sacked and burned Kyiv to the ground. Most Kyivites were massacred. The barbarians robbed churches, even ripping off slices of gold from their domes (something that Genghiside Mongolians later never did, they were gentlemen). They stole, among others, one most precious and revered icon of the Most Holy Mother of God from a church in the Berestovo village just south of Kyiv, taking it to their land and pretending, for centuries to follow, that it was theirs. This icon to this day is known as Матерь Божья Владимирская, “the Mother of God of Vladimir-on-Klyazyma,” as if it was painted in that savage pl ace. The 1168 massacre marked the beginning of the “brotherly” relationship between the Ukrainian peopl e and what is now known as “Russians” (русские, not to be confused with Rusyns-Rusychi-Ukrainians). Kyiv was hit so hard that it did not fully recover for the next ~200 years. When the Mongols under Khan Batu came in 1240, Kyiv was still not fully repopulated or rebuilt, and fell a relatively easy prey to the Asian conquerors.
ellauri190.html on line 257: In a traditional account the horses transporting the icon had stopped near Vladimir and refused to go further. Accordingly, many peopl e of Rus interpreted this as a sign that the Theotokos wanted the icon to stay there. The pl ace was named Bogolyubovo, or "the one loved by God". Andrey pl aced it in his Bogolyubovo residence and built the Assumption Cathedral to legitimize his claim that Vladimir had repl aced Kiev as the principal city of Rus. However, its presence did not prevent the sack and burning of the city of Vladimir by the Mongols in 1238, when the icon was damaged in the fire. You win some, you lose some.
ellauri190.html on line 261: In the first half of the 14th century, most of what is now Ukraine was cleared of the Mongols by the troops of a powerful ruler of Lithuania, Gedimin, and Ukraine became a part of the Great Duchy of Lithuania. The latter was a peculiar country. The bulk of its territory and population was what now is the Slavic country of Belarus. Only a small minority of its peopl e traced their origin from the Baltic tribes, while the majority were Slavs. Gedimin’s name in modern Lithuanian is Gyadiminas, but in the chronicles he is named Kgindimin or Kindimin, which might have a Slavic root. The language of Gedimin’s court, and the court of his sons and grandsons was very Slavic, much like a mixture of somewhat archaic Ukrainian and Belarusian. The laws of the entire Duchy, the so-called Lithuanian Statutes, were written in the Cyrillic alphabet and read very much like the Belarusian (definitely Slavic) language. So they were bad guys in anyone's book already then.
ellauri190.html on line 263: In any case, Ukraine (unlike Muscovy) remained in Europe. In the 15th century, the Great Duke of Lithuania, Yahailo, married a Polish queen Yadviga. Thus, the Great Duchy of Lithuania (which included Ukraine) and the Kingdom of Poland became one state. In the 16th century, it became known as Rzeczpospolita, from Latin Res Publica – literally, “the common affair,” or Republic. (Kozaks, inveterate democrats, did not like it.) It was a monarchy, but the monarchs were elected by a parliament, called Sejm. The country maintained close ties with Western Europe, and, unlike wimpy Muscovy, was compl etely independent of the Mongol autocracies like the Golden Horde.
ellauri190.html on line 267: In the 15th-16th centuries, most of what is now Ukraine belonged to the Polish-Lithuanian commonwealth (“The Republic”), but the life of the peopl e depended to a very large extent on their local feudal lords, the Knyazi (“Princes”). Most of these lords were related to the house of Gedimin, spoke a language close to modern Belarusian and Ukrainian, and were Eastern Orthodox Christians. Yet, beginning from ~1569 (the year of the so-called Lublin Unia), these princes also swore allegiance to the Polish king, and were his vassals and courtiers. They corresponded in Latin, Polish, or their native “Old Ukrainian / Old Belarusian” Slavic language. Among them, perhaps the mightiest ruler was Prince Konstayntyn Vasyl Ostrozky. He was nicknamed “the un-crowned King of Rus,” and was, actually, offered the Polish crown several times, but refused because the kings of Poland were, traditionally, Catholics – and Prince Ostrozky wanted to remain Orthodox. He is famous for printing the first Gospels in his native language, and founding the Academy of Ostroh, a university that functions to this day.
ellauri190.html on line 275: In 1648, a Kozak leader called Zinoviy Bohdan Khmelnytsky (Polish transliteration, Chmielnicki) started a war on the Polish crown. Initially, it was his own personal vendetta on a Polish landlord who stole his land, but very soon it grew into a colossal uprising of the Kozaks and Ukrainian peasants against their Polish landlords. The peopl e fought (the way they knew how) against the feudal oppression, as well as against forced Catholicization and Polonization of Ukraine. Unfortunately, it turned into a fratricide. (Sorry Poles, of course we are on the same side now.) The main adversary of Khmelnytsky was Prince Yarema (Jeremiah) Korybut-Vyshnevetsky, a Rusyn-Ukrainian, a noble valiant knight and a great statesman who, nonetheless, kept his allegiance to the Polish king (whom he personally hated, but could not break his knight’s oath of loyalty). Both sides resorted to unspeakable cruelties. Most tragically, Khmelnysky, a brave warrior as he was, turned out to be a horribly short-sighted politician. In January 1654, he essentially surrendered Ukraine to Muscovy, approving what he thought was a temporary military union against the Republic but turned out to be the beginning of the “Russian” (actually Muscovite) occupation of Ukraine. It just goes to show: give a pinky finger to the Russkies and they take the whole hand.
ellauri190.html on line 279: By the end of the 17th century, the newly forming Russian Empire under Tzar Peter I established its reign over the Ukrainian lands to the east of the Dnipro river, ceding the western part of Ukraine to the Republic (which, in turn, evolved more and more into the Polish monarchy rather than the Polish-Lithuanian Commonwealth of the old days). In 1702, a great son of Ukraine, a giant of military strategy, dipl omacy, and statesmanship, Ivan Mazepa, being the Kozak leader of the eastern part of Ukraine, suppressed the uprising of Paliy on the other (Western) side of the Dnipro and added huge parts of the country to his control. It was a big step toward the unification and freedom of Ukraine. Moreover, in 1709 Mazepa joined his forces with the Swedish king Charles XII (haha, the gay) against Tzar Peter, hoping to rid his dear mother Ukraine from slavery in the captivity of the Tzars. And again… tragically, Mazepa managed to gather less manpower than he hoped to gather, because the populist agitators slandered him in their massive propaganda campaign (no doubt, directed from Muscovy), portraying him in the eyes of the Ukrainian Kozaks as a rich aristocrat who cares nothing about the “simpl e peopl e,” a clandestine Catholic (or Protestant), and overall “not really Ukrainian.” (This tragedy will repeat itself in 1918 and in 2019.) Mazepa’s loyalists were defeated together with the Swedes, and Ukraine lost her historical chance for yet another time. But third time is a charm! Nobody will blame a Jew for being on the side of the catholics!
ellauri190.html on line 287: As a result of the mid–17th century Khmelnytsky Uprising, the Zaporozhian Cossacks briefly established an independent state, which later became the autonomous Cossack Hetmanate (1649–1764). It was pl aced under the suzerainty of the Russian Tsar from 1667, but was ruled by local hetmans for a century. The principal political problem of the hetmans who followed the Pereyeslav Agreement was defending the autonomy of the Hetmanate from Russian/Muscovite centralism. The hetmans Ivan Vyhovsky, Petro Doroshenko and Ivan Mazepa attempted to resolve this by separating Ukraine from Russia.
ellauri190.html on line 295: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c9/22._Kozak_z_golovoju_tatarina.jpg/240px-22._Kozak_z_golovoju_tatarina.jpg" />
ellauri190.html on line 305: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4d/New_Russia_on_territory_of_Ukraine.png/300px-New_Russia_on_territory_of_Ukraine.png" width="50%" />
ellauri190.html on line 315: The Russo-Polish geographer and ethnographer Zygmunt Gloger in his "Geography of historic lands of the Old Poland" (Polish: "Geografia historyczna ziem dawnej Polski") expl ains that at the time the term "Little" was interchangeably with the word "new", and in his footnotes, he clearly states that, at least in 1903, Little Russia (Malorossia) was perceived in such manner. Prior to the revolutionary events of 1917, a large part of the region's élite population adopted a Little Russian identity that competed with the local Ukrainian identity. At that time it was trendy to be Russian, large or small.
ellauri190.html on line 317: After the collapse of the Russian Empire in 1917, and with the amalgamation of Ukrainian territories into one administrative unit (Ukrainian Peopl e's Republic), the term started to recede from common use. Today, the term is anachronistic, and many nazi Ukrainians regard its usage as offensive.
ellauri190.html on line 319: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri190.html on line 328: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri190.html on line 333: Tässä puolisensataa herra Petteriä pl us 1 rouva, Zenobia, joka on otettu mukaan ihan säälistä. Tiedot ovat eräältä amerikkalaiselta sivulta . Kumma ettei yhtään amerikkalaista ole mukana? Ellei konkistadoreja lasketa. Hunnit olivat ilmeisesti Kiinan pohjoisnaapureita kiinalaiselta nimeltään Xiongnu. Ne miehittivät Saxan kansainvaellusten aikana ja saivat sillä lailla aikaan Rooman tuhon. Hitlerin Aatun aikana sanottiin sakemanneja vuorostaan hunneixi (the Huns). Ruottalaiset tunsi Attilan nimellä Atle. Listasta puuttuu ainakin toinen valloittava nainen, nimittäin Katariina Suuri.
ellauri190.html on line 373: Qin Shi Huang is the modern Chinese name of King Zheng of Qin (r.246–221 BC), who ended the Warring States period by compl eting the conquest of China in 221 BC. Rather than maintain the title of king borne by the Shang and Zhou rulers, he r...
ellauri190.html on line 504: Mehmed II (1432-1481), nicknamed the conqueror, was the sultan of the Ottoman Empire a short time in 1444 to 1446, and from 1451 to 1481. Mehmed II brought an end to the Byzantine Empire by capturing Constantinopl e in 1453 (during the well-...
ellauri190.html on line 529: Francisco Pizarro was a Conquistador who seized the Inca empire for Spain. In 1510 he enrolled in an expedition of expl oration in the New World, and three years later he joined Vasco Núñez de Balboa on the expedition that discovered the Pac...
ellauri190.html on line 534: Hayreddin Barbarossa was an Ottoman admiral of the fleet who was born in the Ottoman island of Midilli (Lesbos) and died in Constantinopl e (Istanbul), the Ottoman capital. Barbarossa's naval victories secured Ottoman dominance over the Medi...
ellauri191.html on line 33: HINOA JOHN play:none">Kulttuurihistoriaa
ellauri191.html on line 36: To Alfred Nobel in 1866, in recognition of a step forward into making bombs, which has helped growth expl osion in a lot of ways.
ellauri191.html on line 86: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/39/Sully-Prudhomme.jpg/75px-Sully-Prudhomme.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/39/Sully-Prudhomme.jpg/113px-Sully-Prudhomme.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/39/Sully-Prudhomme.jpg/150px-Sully-Prudhomme.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 91: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/93/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%29.svg.png" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 103: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e9/T-mommsen-2.jpg/75px-T-mommsen-2.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="105" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e9/T-mommsen-2.jpg/113px-T-mommsen-2.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e9/T-mommsen-2.jpg/150px-T-mommsen-2.jpg 2x" data-file-width="282" data-file-height="394" />
ellauri191.html on line 108: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png" decoding="async" title="Saksan keisarikunta" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Saksa
ellauri191.html on line 120: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/db/Portrett_av_Bj%C3%B8rnstjerne_Bj%C3%B8rnson%2C_ca_1903_-_no-nb_digifoto_20150129_00041_bldsa_BB0803.jpg/75px-Portrett_av_Bj%C3%B8rnstjerne_Bj%C3%B8rnson%2C_ca_1903_-_no-nb_digifoto_20150129_00041_bldsa_BB0803.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="116" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/db/Portrett_av_Bj%C3%B8rnstjerne_Bj%C3%B8rnson%2C_ca_1903_-_no-nb_digifoto_20150129_00041_bldsa_BB0803.jpg/113px-Portrett_av_Bj%C3%B8rnstjerne_Bj%C3%B8rnson%2C_ca_1903_-_no-nb_digifoto_20150129_00041_bldsa_BB0803.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/db/Portrett_av_Bj%C3%B8rnstjerne_Bj%C3%B8rnson%2C_ca_1903_-_no-nb_digifoto_20150129_00041_bldsa_BB0803.jpg/150px-Portrett_av_Bj%C3%B8rnstjerne_Bj%C3%B8rnson%2C_ca_1903_-_no-nb_digifoto_20150129_00041_bldsa_BB0803.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2299" data-file-height="3550" />
ellauri191.html on line 125: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/Flag_of_Norway.svg/21px-Flag_of_Norway.svg.png" decoding="async" width="21" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/Flag_of_Norway.svg/32px-Flag_of_Norway.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/Flag_of_Norway.svg/41px-Flag_of_Norway.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="372" /> Norja
ellauri191.html on line 137: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5f/Fr%C3%A9d%C3%A9ric_Mistral_by_Paul_Sa%C3%AFn.jpg/75px-Fr%C3%A9d%C3%A9ric_Mistral_by_Paul_Sa%C3%AFn.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="101" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5f/Fr%C3%A9d%C3%A9ric_Mistral_by_Paul_Sa%C3%AFn.jpg/113px-Fr%C3%A9d%C3%A9ric_Mistral_by_Paul_Sa%C3%AFn.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5f/Fr%C3%A9d%C3%A9ric_Mistral_by_Paul_Sa%C3%AFn.jpg/150px-Fr%C3%A9d%C3%A9ric_Mistral_by_Paul_Sa%C3%AFn.jpg 2x" data-file-width="955" data-file-height="1280" />
ellauri191.html on line 142: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/93/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%29.svg.png" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 146: "in recognition of the fresh originality and true inspiration of his poetic production, which faithfully reflects the natural scenery and native spirit of his peopl e, and, in addition, his significant work as a Provençal philologist"
ellauri191.html on line 152: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9b/Jos%C3%A9_Echegaray_y_Eizaguirre.jpg/75px-Jos%C3%A9_Echegaray_y_Eizaguirre.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="113" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9b/Jos%C3%A9_Echegaray_y_Eizaguirre.jpg/113px-Jos%C3%A9_Echegaray_y_Eizaguirre.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9b/Jos%C3%A9_Echegaray_y_Eizaguirre.jpg/150px-Jos%C3%A9_Echegaray_y_Eizaguirre.jpg 2x" data-file-width="496" data-file-height="744" />
ellauri191.html on line 157: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="800" /> Espanja
ellauri191.html on line 169: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/29/Henryk_Sienkiewicz_1905.jpg/75px-Henryk_Sienkiewicz_1905.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/29/Henryk_Sienkiewicz_1905.jpg/113px-Henryk_Sienkiewicz_1905.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/29/Henryk_Sienkiewicz_1905.jpg/150px-Henryk_Sienkiewicz_1905.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 174: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8b/Military_ensign_of_Vistula_Flotilla_of_Congress_Poland.svg/20px-Military_ensign_of_Vistula_Flotilla_of_Congress_Poland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="20" height="13" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8b/Military_ensign_of_Vistula_Flotilla_of_Congress_Poland.svg/30px-Military_ensign_of_Vistula_Flotilla_of_Congress_Poland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8b/Military_ensign_of_Vistula_Flotilla_of_Congress_Poland.svg/40px-Military_ensign_of_Vistula_Flotilla_of_Congress_Poland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Kongressi-Puola
ellauri191.html on line 178: "in recognition of the fresh originality and true inspiration of his poetic production, which faithfully reflects the natural scenery and native spirit of his peopl e, and, in addition, his significant work as a Provençal philologist"
ellauri191.html on line 185: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c9/Carducci.jpg/75px-Carducci.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="98" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c9/Carducci.jpg/113px-Carducci.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c9/Carducci.jpg/150px-Carducci.jpg 2x" data-file-width="157" data-file-height="206" />
ellauri191.html on line 190: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg/23px-Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg/35px-Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg/45px-Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1500" data-file-height="1000" /> Italia
ellauri191.html on line 202: pling.jpg" class="image"> pling.jpg" src="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6f/Rudyard_Kipl ing.jpg/75px-Rudyard_Kipl ing.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="116" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6f/Rudyard_Kipl ing.jpg/113px-Rudyard_Kipl ing.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6f/Rudyard_Kipl ing.jpg/150px-Rudyard_Kipl ing.jpg 2x" data-file-width="393" data-file-height="608" />
ellauri191.html on line 204: pling" title="Rudyard Kipl ing">Rudyard Kipl ing
ellauri191.html on line 207: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 218: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ad/Eucken-im-Alter.png/75px-Eucken-im-Alter.png" decoding="async" width="75" height="114" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ad/Eucken-im-Alter.png/113px-Eucken-im-Alter.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ad/Eucken-im-Alter.png/150px-Eucken-im-Alter.png 2x" data-file-width="373" data-file-height="566" />
ellauri191.html on line 223: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png" decoding="async" title="Saksan keisarikunta" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Saksa
ellauri191.html on line 235: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/11/Selma_Lagerl%C3%B6f.jpg/75px-Selma_Lagerl%C3%B6f.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/11/Selma_Lagerl%C3%B6f.jpg/113px-Selma_Lagerl%C3%B6f.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/11/Selma_Lagerl%C3%B6f.jpg/150px-Selma_Lagerl%C3%B6f.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 240: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/23px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/35px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/46px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="320" /> Ruotsi
ellauri191.html on line 250: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/da/Paul_Heyse_1910.jpg/75px-Paul_Heyse_1910.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/da/Paul_Heyse_1910.jpg/113px-Paul_Heyse_1910.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/da/Paul_Heyse_1910.jpg/150px-Paul_Heyse_1910.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 255: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png" decoding="async" title="Saksan keisarikunta" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Saksa
ellauri191.html on line 267: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/Maeterlinck.jpg/75px-Maeterlinck.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="118" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/Maeterlinck.jpg/113px-Maeterlinck.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/Maeterlinck.jpg/150px-Maeterlinck.jpg 2x" data-file-width="206" data-file-height="324" />
ellauri191.html on line 272: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/92/Flag_of_Belgium_%28civil%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_Belgium_%28civil%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/92/Flag_of_Belgium_%28civil%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_Belgium_%28civil%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/92/Flag_of_Belgium_%28civil%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_Belgium_%28civil%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Belgia
ellauri191.html on line 283: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/05/Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg/75px-Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/05/Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg/113px-Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/05/Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg/150px-Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 288: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png" decoding="async" title="Saksan keisarikunta" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_Germany_%281867%E2%80%931918%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Saksa
ellauri191.html on line 300: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/91/Rabindranath_Tagore_in_1909.jpg/75px-Rabindranath_Tagore_in_1909.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="105" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/91/Rabindranath_Tagore_in_1909.jpg/113px-Rabindranath_Tagore_in_1909.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/91/Rabindranath_Tagore_in_1909.jpg/150px-Rabindranath_Tagore_in_1909.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1071" data-file-height="1500" />
ellauri191.html on line 305: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/be/British_Raj_Red_Ensign.svg/23px-British_Raj_Red_Ensign.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/be/British_Raj_Red_Ensign.svg/35px-British_Raj_Red_Ensign.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/be/British_Raj_Red_Ensign.svg/46px-British_Raj_Red_Ensign.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="600" data-file-height="300" /> Intia
ellauri191.html on line 311: poetry, novel, drama, short story, pl aywright, music, essay, philosophy, literary criticism, translation, painting
ellauri191.html on line 325: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ad/Romain_Rolland_1915.jpg/75px-Romain_Rolland_1915.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ad/Romain_Rolland_1915.jpg/113px-Romain_Rolland_1915.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ad/Romain_Rolland_1915.jpg/150px-Romain_Rolland_1915.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 330: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/93/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%29.svg.png" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 341: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b4/Verner_von_Heidenstam_1916.jpg/75px-Verner_von_Heidenstam_1916.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b4/Verner_von_Heidenstam_1916.jpg/113px-Verner_von_Heidenstam_1916.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b4/Verner_von_Heidenstam_1916.jpg/150px-Verner_von_Heidenstam_1916.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 346: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/23px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/35px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/46px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="320" /> Ruotsi
ellauri191.html on line 358: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/35/Karl_Gjellerup.jpg/75px-Karl_Gjellerup.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="87" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/35/Karl_Gjellerup.jpg/113px-Karl_Gjellerup.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/35/Karl_Gjellerup.jpg/150px-Karl_Gjellerup.jpg 2x" data-file-width="496" data-file-height="573" />
ellauri191.html on line 363: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Flag_of_Denmark.svg/20px-Flag_of_Denmark.svg.png" decoding="async" width="20" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Flag_of_Denmark.svg/31px-Flag_of_Denmark.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Flag_of_Denmark.svg/40px-Flag_of_Denmark.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="387" /> Tanska
ellauri191.html on line 373: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ea/Henrik_Pontoppidan_1913.jpg/75px-Henrik_Pontoppidan_1913.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ea/Henrik_Pontoppidan_1913.jpg/113px-Henrik_Pontoppidan_1913.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ea/Henrik_Pontoppidan_1913.jpg/150px-Henrik_Pontoppidan_1913.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1000" data-file-height="1416" />
ellauri191.html on line 378: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Flag_of_Denmark.svg/20px-Flag_of_Denmark.svg.png" decoding="async" width="20" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Flag_of_Denmark.svg/31px-Flag_of_Denmark.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Flag_of_Denmark.svg/40px-Flag_of_Denmark.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="387" /> Tanska
ellauri191.html on line 401: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/62/Carl_Spitteler_1919.jpg/75px-Carl_Spitteler_1919.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/62/Carl_Spitteler_1919.jpg/113px-Carl_Spitteler_1919.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/62/Carl_Spitteler_1919.jpg/150px-Carl_Spitteler_1919.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 406: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f3/Flag_of_Switzerland.svg/20px-Flag_of_Switzerland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="20" height="20" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f3/Flag_of_Switzerland.svg/30px-Flag_of_Switzerland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f3/Flag_of_Switzerland.svg/40px-Flag_of_Switzerland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="512" /> Sveitsi
ellauri191.html on line 418: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/41/Hamsun_bldsa_HA0341.jpg/75px-Hamsun_bldsa_HA0341.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="108" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/41/Hamsun_bldsa_HA0341.jpg/113px-Hamsun_bldsa_HA0341.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/41/Hamsun_bldsa_HA0341.jpg/150px-Hamsun_bldsa_HA0341.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2294" data-file-height="3300" />
ellauri191.html on line 423: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/Flag_of_Norway.svg/21px-Flag_of_Norway.svg.png" decoding="async" width="21" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/Flag_of_Norway.svg/32px-Flag_of_Norway.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/Flag_of_Norway.svg/41px-Flag_of_Norway.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="372" /> Norja
ellauri191.html on line 436: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Anatole_France_1921.jpg/75px-Anatole_France_1921.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Anatole_France_1921.jpg/113px-Anatole_France_1921.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Anatole_France_1921.jpg/150px-Anatole_France_1921.jpg 2x" data-file-width="473" data-file-height="671" />
ellauri191.html on line 441: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 452: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Jacinto_Benavente.jpg/75px-Jacinto_Benavente.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="105" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Jacinto_Benavente.jpg/113px-Jacinto_Benavente.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Jacinto_Benavente.jpg/150px-Jacinto_Benavente.jpg 2x" data-file-width="162" data-file-height="227" />
ellauri191.html on line 457: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg/23pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_Spain_%281785%E2%80%931873%2C_1875%E2%80%931931%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="800" /> Espanja
ellauri191.html on line 469: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/62/Yeats_Boughton.jpg/75px-Yeats_Boughton.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="100" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/62/Yeats_Boughton.jpg/113px-Yeats_Boughton.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/62/Yeats_Boughton.jpg/150px-Yeats_Boughton.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1000" data-file-height="1336" />
ellauri191.html on line 474: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Flag_of_Ireland.svg/23px-Flag_of_Ireland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Flag_of_Ireland.svg/35px-Flag_of_Ireland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Flag_of_Ireland.svg/46px-Flag_of_Ireland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="600" /> Irlanti
ellauri191.html on line 484: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a1/Wladyslaw_Reymont_1924.jpg/75px-Wladyslaw_Reymont_1924.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a1/Wladyslaw_Reymont_1924.jpg/113px-Wladyslaw_Reymont_1924.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a1/Wladyslaw_Reymont_1924.jpg/150px-Wladyslaw_Reymont_1924.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 489: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/23px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/35px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/46px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="640" data-file-height="400" /> Puola
ellauri191.html on line 501: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f2/George_Bernard_Shaw_1936.jpg/75px-George_Bernard_Shaw_1936.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="104" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f2/George_Bernard_Shaw_1936.jpg/113px-George_Bernard_Shaw_1936.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f2/George_Bernard_Shaw_1936.jpg/150px-George_Bernard_Shaw_1936.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2225" data-file-height="3072" />
ellauri191.html on line 506: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 519: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/Grazia_Deledda_1926.jpg/75px-Grazia_Deledda_1926.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/Grazia_Deledda_1926.jpg/113px-Grazia_Deledda_1926.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/Grazia_Deledda_1926.jpg/150px-Grazia_Deledda_1926.jpg 2x" data-file-width="800" data-file-height="1131" />
ellauri191.html on line 524: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg/23px-Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg/35px-Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg/45px-Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1500" data-file-height="1000" /> Italia
ellauri191.html on line 528: "for her idealistically inspired writings, which with pl astic clarity picture the life on her native island and with depth and sympathy deal with human problems in general"
ellauri191.html on line 536: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/02/Henri_Bergson.jpg/75px-Henri_Bergson.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="111" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/02/Henri_Bergson.jpg/113px-Henri_Bergson.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/02/Henri_Bergson.jpg/150px-Henri_Bergson.jpg 2x" data-file-width="543" data-file-height="803" />
ellauri191.html on line 541: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 552: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/14/Sigrid_Undset_1928.jpg/75px-Sigrid_Undset_1928.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/14/Sigrid_Undset_1928.jpg/113px-Sigrid_Undset_1928.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/14/Sigrid_Undset_1928.jpg/150px-Sigrid_Undset_1928.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 557: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/Flag_of_Norway.svg/21px-Flag_of_Norway.svg.png" decoding="async" width="21" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/Flag_of_Norway.svg/32px-Flag_of_Norway.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/Flag_of_Norway.svg/41px-Flag_of_Norway.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="372" /> Norja
ellauri191.html on line 568: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/95/Thomas_Mann_1929.jpg/75px-Thomas_Mann_1929.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/95/Thomas_Mann_1929.jpg/113px-Thomas_Mann_1929.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/95/Thomas_Mann_1929.jpg/150px-Thomas_Mann_1929.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 573: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/23px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/35px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/46px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1000" data-file-height="600" /> Saksa
ellauri191.html on line 584: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0a/Sinclair_Lewis_1930.jpg/75px-Sinclair_Lewis_1930.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0a/Sinclair_Lewis_1930.jpg/113px-Sinclair_Lewis_1930.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0a/Sinclair_Lewis_1930.jpg/150px-Sinclair_Lewis_1930.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 589: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 600: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e7/Erik_Axel_Karlfeldt_1931.jpg/75px-Erik_Axel_Karlfeldt_1931.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e7/Erik_Axel_Karlfeldt_1931.jpg/113px-Erik_Axel_Karlfeldt_1931.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e7/Erik_Axel_Karlfeldt_1931.jpg/150px-Erik_Axel_Karlfeldt_1931.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 605: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/23px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/35px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/46px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="320" /> Ruotsi
ellauri191.html on line 617: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4d/John_Galsworthy_2.jpg/75px-John_Galsworthy_2.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="103" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4d/John_Galsworthy_2.jpg/113px-John_Galsworthy_2.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4d/John_Galsworthy_2.jpg/150px-John_Galsworthy_2.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1661" data-file-height="2280" />
ellauri191.html on line 622: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 633: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/19/Ivan_Bunin_1933.jpg/75px-Ivan_Bunin_1933.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="94" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/19/Ivan_Bunin_1933.jpg/113px-Ivan_Bunin_1933.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/19/Ivan_Bunin_1933.jpg/150px-Ivan_Bunin_1933.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1416" data-file-height="1770" />
ellauri191.html on line 638: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska (maanpakolainen)
ellauri191.html on line 650: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/17/Luigi_Pirandello_1932.jpg/75px-Luigi_Pirandello_1932.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="90" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/17/Luigi_Pirandello_1932.jpg/113px-Luigi_Pirandello_1932.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/17/Luigi_Pirandello_1932.jpg/150px-Luigi_Pirandello_1932.jpg 2x" data-file-width="3342" data-file-height="4021" />
ellauri191.html on line 655: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg/23px-Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg/35px-Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg/45px-Flag_of_Italy_%281861-1946%29_crowned.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1500" data-file-height="1000" /> Italia
ellauri191.html on line 675: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c8/Eugene_O%27Neill_1936.jpg/75px-Eugene_O%27Neill_1936.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c8/Eugene_O%27Neill_1936.jpg/113px-Eugene_O%27Neill_1936.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c8/Eugene_O%27Neill_1936.jpg/150px-Eugene_O%27Neill_1936.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 680: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 691: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/Roger_Martin_du_Gard_1937.jpg/75px-Roger_Martin_du_Gard_1937.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/Roger_Martin_du_Gard_1937.jpg/113px-Roger_Martin_du_Gard_1937.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/Roger_Martin_du_Gard_1937.jpg/150px-Roger_Martin_du_Gard_1937.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 696: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 708: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bf/Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg/75px-Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bf/Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg/113px-Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bf/Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg/150px-Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 713: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 724: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/Frans_Eemil_Sillanp%C3%A4%C3%A4_1939.jpg/75px-Frans_Eemil_Sillanp%C3%A4%C3%A4_1939.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/Frans_Eemil_Sillanp%C3%A4%C3%A4_1939.jpg/113px-Frans_Eemil_Sillanp%C3%A4%C3%A4_1939.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/Frans_Eemil_Sillanp%C3%A4%C3%A4_1939.jpg/150px-Frans_Eemil_Sillanp%C3%A4%C3%A4_1939.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 729: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_Finland.svg/23px-Flag_of_Finland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_Finland.svg/35px-Flag_of_Finland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_Finland.svg/46px-Flag_of_Finland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1800" data-file-height="1100" /> Suomi
ellauri191.html on line 776: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/85/Johannes_Vilhelm_Jensen_1944.jpg/75px-Johannes_Vilhelm_Jensen_1944.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/85/Johannes_Vilhelm_Jensen_1944.jpg/113px-Johannes_Vilhelm_Jensen_1944.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/85/Johannes_Vilhelm_Jensen_1944.jpg/150px-Johannes_Vilhelm_Jensen_1944.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 781: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Flag_of_Denmark.svg/20px-Flag_of_Denmark.svg.png" decoding="async" width="20" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Flag_of_Denmark.svg/31px-Flag_of_Denmark.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Flag_of_Denmark.svg/40px-Flag_of_Denmark.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="387" /> Tanska
ellauri191.html on line 793: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/64/Gabriela_Mistral_1945.jpg/75px-Gabriela_Mistral_1945.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/64/Gabriela_Mistral_1945.jpg/113px-Gabriela_Mistral_1945.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/64/Gabriela_Mistral_1945.jpg/150px-Gabriela_Mistral_1945.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 798: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/78/Flag_of_Chile.svg/23px-Flag_of_Chile.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/78/Flag_of_Chile.svg/35px-Flag_of_Chile.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/78/Flag_of_Chile.svg/45px-Flag_of_Chile.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Chile
ellauri191.html on line 810: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cb/Hermann_Hesse_1946.jpg/75px-Hermann_Hesse_1946.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cb/Hermann_Hesse_1946.jpg/113px-Hermann_Hesse_1946.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cb/Hermann_Hesse_1946.jpg/150px-Hermann_Hesse_1946.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 815: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f3/Flag_of_Switzerland.svg/15px-Flag_of_Switzerland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="15" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f3/Flag_of_Switzerland.svg/23px-Flag_of_Switzerland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f3/Flag_of_Switzerland.svg/30px-Flag_of_Switzerland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="512" /> Sveitsi
ellauri191.html on line 819: "for his inspired writings, which while growing in boldness and penetration, exempl ify the classical humanitarian ideals and high qualities of style"
ellauri191.html on line 826: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/16/Andr%C3%A9_Gide_1947.jpg/75px-Andr%C3%A9_Gide_1947.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/16/Andr%C3%A9_Gide_1947.jpg/113px-Andr%C3%A9_Gide_1947.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/16/Andr%C3%A9_Gide_1947.jpg/150px-Andr%C3%A9_Gide_1947.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 831: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 842: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/26/Thomas_Stearns_Eliot_by_Lady_Ottoline_Morrell_%281934%29.jpg/75px-Thomas_Stearns_Eliot_by_Lady_Ottoline_Morrell_%281934%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="87" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/26/Thomas_Stearns_Eliot_by_Lady_Ottoline_Morrell_%281934%29.jpg/113px-Thomas_Stearns_Eliot_by_Lady_Ottoline_Morrell_%281934%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/26/Thomas_Stearns_Eliot_by_Lady_Ottoline_Morrell_%281934%29.jpg/150px-Thomas_Stearns_Eliot_by_Lady_Ottoline_Morrell_%281934%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="432" data-file-height="500" />
ellauri191.html on line 847: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 860: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6d/Carl_Van_Vechten_-_William_Faulkner.jpg/75px-Carl_Van_Vechten_-_William_Faulkner.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="105" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6d/Carl_Van_Vechten_-_William_Faulkner.jpg/113px-Carl_Van_Vechten_-_William_Faulkner.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6d/Carl_Van_Vechten_-_William_Faulkner.jpg/150px-Carl_Van_Vechten_-_William_Faulkner.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2507" data-file-height="3526" />
ellauri191.html on line 865: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 876: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a6/Bertrand_Russell_transparent_bg.png/75px-Bertrand_Russell_transparent_bg.png" decoding="async" width="75" height="111" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a6/Bertrand_Russell_transparent_bg.png/113px-Bertrand_Russell_transparent_bg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a6/Bertrand_Russell_transparent_bg.png/150px-Bertrand_Russell_transparent_bg.png 2x" data-file-width="1255" data-file-height="1859" />
ellauri191.html on line 881: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 892: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Lagerkvist.jpg/75px-Lagerkvist.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Lagerkvist.jpg/113px-Lagerkvist.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Lagerkvist.jpg/150px-Lagerkvist.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 897: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/23px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/35px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/46px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="320" /> Ruotsi
ellauri191.html on line 908: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2b/Fran%C3%A7ois_Mauriac_1952.jpg/75px-Fran%C3%A7ois_Mauriac_1952.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2b/Fran%C3%A7ois_Mauriac_1952.jpg/113px-Fran%C3%A7ois_Mauriac_1952.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2b/Fran%C3%A7ois_Mauriac_1952.jpg/150px-Fran%C3%A7ois_Mauriac_1952.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 913: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 924: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/35/Churchill_portrait_NYP_45063.jpg/75px-Churchill_portrait_NYP_45063.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="89" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/35/Churchill_portrait_NYP_45063.jpg/113px-Churchill_portrait_NYP_45063.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/35/Churchill_portrait_NYP_45063.jpg/150px-Churchill_portrait_NYP_45063.jpg 2x" data-file-width="621" data-file-height="736" />
ellauri191.html on line 929: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 940: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/99/Ernest_Hemingway_1950_crop.jpg/75px-Ernest_Hemingway_1950_crop.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="105" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/99/Ernest_Hemingway_1950_crop.jpg/113px-Ernest_Hemingway_1950_crop.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/99/Ernest_Hemingway_1950_crop.jpg/150px-Ernest_Hemingway_1950_crop.jpg 2x" data-file-width="582" data-file-height="817" />
ellauri191.html on line 945: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 951: novel, short story, screenpl ay
ellauri191.html on line 957: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4d/Halld%C3%B3r_Kiljan_Laxness_1955.jpg/75px-Halld%C3%B3r_Kiljan_Laxness_1955.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4d/Halld%C3%B3r_Kiljan_Laxness_1955.jpg/113px-Halld%C3%B3r_Kiljan_Laxness_1955.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4d/Halld%C3%B3r_Kiljan_Laxness_1955.jpg/150px-Halld%C3%B3r_Kiljan_Laxness_1955.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 962: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_Iceland.svg/21px-Flag_of_Iceland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="21" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_Iceland.svg/32px-Flag_of_Iceland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_Iceland.svg/42px-Flag_of_Iceland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1250" data-file-height="900" /> Islanti
ellauri191.html on line 973: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/16/JRJimenez.JPG/75px-JRJimenez.JPG" decoding="async" width="75" height="95" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/16/JRJimenez.JPG/113px-JRJimenez.JPG 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/16/JRJimenez.JPG/150px-JRJimenez.JPG 2x" data-file-width="1342" data-file-height="1701" />
ellauri191.html on line 978: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg/20px-Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="20" height="13" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg/30px-Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg/40px-Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Espanja
ellauri191.html on line 982: "for his lyrical poetry, which in Spanish language constitutes an exampl e of high spirit and artistical purity"
ellauri191.html on line 989: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/08/Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg/75px-Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="90" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/08/Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg/113px-Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/08/Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg/150px-Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg 2x" data-file-width="719" data-file-height="863" />
ellauri191.html on line 994: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 1005: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cc/Boris_Pasternak_in_youth.jpg/75px-Boris_Pasternak_in_youth.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="97" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cc/Boris_Pasternak_in_youth.jpg/113px-Boris_Pasternak_in_youth.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cc/Boris_Pasternak_in_youth.jpg/150px-Boris_Pasternak_in_youth.jpg 2x" data-file-width="581" data-file-height="750" />
ellauri191.html on line 1010: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="600" /> Neuvostoliitto
ellauri191.html on line 1021: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/74/Salvatore_Quasimodo_1959.jpg/75px-Salvatore_Quasimodo_1959.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/74/Salvatore_Quasimodo_1959.jpg/113px-Salvatore_Quasimodo_1959.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/74/Salvatore_Quasimodo_1959.jpg/150px-Salvatore_Quasimodo_1959.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 1026: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Flag_of_Italy.svg/23px-Flag_of_Italy.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Flag_of_Italy.svg/35px-Flag_of_Italy.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Flag_of_Italy.svg/45px-Flag_of_Italy.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1500" data-file-height="1000" /> Italia
ellauri191.html on line 1037: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/10/Saint-John_Perse_1960.jpg/75px-Saint-John_Perse_1960.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/10/Saint-John_Perse_1960.jpg/113px-Saint-John_Perse_1960.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/10/Saint-John_Perse_1960.jpg/150px-Saint-John_Perse_1960.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 1042: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 1053: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/75/S._Kragujevic%2C_Ivo_Andric%2C_1961.jpg/75px-S._Kragujevic%2C_Ivo_Andric%2C_1961.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="94" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/75/S._Kragujevic%2C_Ivo_Andric%2C_1961.jpg/113px-S._Kragujevic%2C_Ivo_Andric%2C_1961.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/75/S._Kragujevic%2C_Ivo_Andric%2C_1961.jpg/150px-S._Kragujevic%2C_Ivo_Andric%2C_1961.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1102" data-file-height="1388" />
ellauri191.html on line 1058: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/61/Flag_of_Yugoslavia_%281946-1992%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_Yugoslavia_%281946-1992%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/61/Flag_of_Yugoslavia_%281946-1992%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_Yugoslavia_%281946-1992%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/61/Flag_of_Yugoslavia_%281946-1992%29.svg/46px-Flag_of_Yugoslavia_%281946-1992%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1000" data-file-height="500" /> Jugoslavia
ellauri191.html on line 1070: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b5/JohnSteinbeck_crop.JPG/75px-JohnSteinbeck_crop.JPG" decoding="async" width="75" height="101" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b5/JohnSteinbeck_crop.JPG/113px-JohnSteinbeck_crop.JPG 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b5/JohnSteinbeck_crop.JPG/150px-JohnSteinbeck_crop.JPG 2x" data-file-width="1186" data-file-height="1604" />
ellauri191.html on line 1075: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f5/Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States_%281912-1959%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 1081: novel, short story, screenpl ay
ellauri191.html on line 1086: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b1/Giorgos_Seferis_1963.jpg/75px-Giorgos_Seferis_1963.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b1/Giorgos_Seferis_1963.jpg/113px-Giorgos_Seferis_1963.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b1/Giorgos_Seferis_1963.jpg/150px-Giorgos_Seferis_1963.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 1091: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6e/Flag_of_Greece_%281822-1978%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_Greece_%281822-1978%29.svg.png" decoding="async" title="Kreikan kuningaskunta" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6e/Flag_of_Greece_%281822-1978%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_Greece_%281822-1978%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6e/Flag_of_Greece_%281822-1978%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_Greece_%281822-1978%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="800" /> Kreikka
ellauri191.html on line 1102: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f4/Sartre_closeup.jpg/75px-Sartre_closeup.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="97" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f4/Sartre_closeup.jpg/113px-Sartre_closeup.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f4/Sartre_closeup.jpg/150px-Sartre_closeup.jpg 2x" data-file-width="299" data-file-height="388" />
ellauri191.html on line 1107: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 1113: novel, short story, philosophy, drama, literary criticism, screenpl ay
ellauri191.html on line 1118: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/Mikhail_Sholokhov_1960.jpg/75px-Mikhail_Sholokhov_1960.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="102" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/Mikhail_Sholokhov_1960.jpg/113px-Mikhail_Sholokhov_1960.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/Mikhail_Sholokhov_1960.jpg/150px-Mikhail_Sholokhov_1960.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1166" data-file-height="1587" />
ellauri191.html on line 1123: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="600" /> Neuvostoliitto
ellauri191.html on line 1127: "for the artistic power and integrity with which, in his epic of the Don , he has given expression to a historic phase in the life of the Russian peopl e"
ellauri191.html on line 1137: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f9/%D7%A4%D7%95%D7%A8%D7%98%D7%A8%D7%98_%D7%A9%22%D7%99_%D7%A2%D7%92%D7%A0%D7%95%D7%9F_%28cropped%29.jpg/75px-%D7%A4%D7%95%D7%A8%D7%98%D7%A8%D7%98_%D7%A9%22%D7%99_%D7%A2%D7%92%D7%A0%D7%95%D7%9F_%28cropped%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="113" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f9/%D7%A4%D7%95%D7%A8%D7%98%D7%A8%D7%98_%D7%A9%22%D7%99_%D7%A2%D7%92%D7%A0%D7%95%D7%9F_%28cropped%29.jpg/113px-%D7%A4%D7%95%D7%A8%D7%98%D7%A8%D7%98_%D7%A9%22%D7%99_%D7%A2%D7%92%D7%A0%D7%95%D7%9F_%28cropped%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f9/%D7%A4%D7%95%D7%A8%D7%98%D7%A8%D7%98_%D7%A9%22%D7%99_%D7%A2%D7%92%D7%A0%D7%95%D7%9F_%28cropped%29.jpg/150px-%D7%A4%D7%95%D7%A8%D7%98%D7%A8%D7%98_%D7%A9%22%D7%99_%D7%A2%D7%92%D7%A0%D7%95%D7%9F_%28cropped%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2013" data-file-height="3020" />
ellauri191.html on line 1142: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d4/Flag_of_Israel.svg/21px-Flag_of_Israel.svg.png" decoding="async" width="21" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d4/Flag_of_Israel.svg/32px-Flag_of_Israel.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d4/Flag_of_Israel.svg/41px-Flag_of_Israel.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1100" data-file-height="800" /> Israel
ellauri191.html on line 1146: "for his profoundly characteristic narrative art with motifs from the life of the Jewish peopl e"
ellauri191.html on line 1152: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Nelly_Sachs_1966.jpg/75px-Nelly_Sachs_1966.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Nelly_Sachs_1966.jpg/113px-Nelly_Sachs_1966.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Nelly_Sachs_1966.jpg/150px-Nelly_Sachs_1966.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 1157: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/23px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/35px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/46px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="320" /> Ruotsi
ellauri191.html on line 1171: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/31/MiguelAngelAsturias.JPG/75px-MiguelAngelAsturias.JPG" decoding="async" width="75" height="101" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/31/MiguelAngelAsturias.JPG/113px-MiguelAngelAsturias.JPG 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/31/MiguelAngelAsturias.JPG/150px-MiguelAngelAsturias.JPG 2x" data-file-width="165" data-file-height="222" />
ellauri191.html on line 1176: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ec/Flag_of_Guatemala.svg/23px-Flag_of_Guatemala.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ec/Flag_of_Guatemala.svg/35px-Flag_of_Guatemala.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ec/Flag_of_Guatemala.svg/46px-Flag_of_Guatemala.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="960" data-file-height="600" /> Guatemala
ellauri191.html on line 1180: "for his livid literary achievement, deep-rooted in the national traits and traditions of Indian peopl es of Latin America"
ellauri191.html on line 1188: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b5/Yasunari_Kawabata_1938.jpg/75px-Yasunari_Kawabata_1938.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="79" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b5/Yasunari_Kawabata_1938.jpg/113px-Yasunari_Kawabata_1938.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b5/Yasunari_Kawabata_1938.jpg/150px-Yasunari_Kawabata_1938.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1140" data-file-height="1204" />
ellauri191.html on line 1193: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9e/Flag_of_Japan.svg/23px-Flag_of_Japan.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9e/Flag_of_Japan.svg/35px-Flag_of_Japan.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9e/Flag_of_Japan.svg/45px-Flag_of_Japan.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Japani
ellauri191.html on line 1205: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/09/Samuel_Beckett%2C_Pic%2C_1.jpg/75px-Samuel_Beckett%2C_Pic%2C_1.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="113" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/09/Samuel_Beckett%2C_Pic%2C_1.jpg/113px-Samuel_Beckett%2C_Pic%2C_1.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/09/Samuel_Beckett%2C_Pic%2C_1.jpg/150px-Samuel_Beckett%2C_Pic%2C_1.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2397" data-file-height="3600" />
ellauri191.html on line 1210: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Flag_of_Ireland.svg/23px-Flag_of_Ireland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Flag_of_Ireland.svg/35px-Flag_of_Ireland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Flag_of_Ireland.svg/46px-Flag_of_Ireland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="600" /> Irlanti
ellauri191.html on line 1222: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8d/Aleksandr_Solzhenitsyn_1974crop.jpg/75px-Aleksandr_Solzhenitsyn_1974crop.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="94" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8d/Aleksandr_Solzhenitsyn_1974crop.jpg/113px-Aleksandr_Solzhenitsyn_1974crop.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8d/Aleksandr_Solzhenitsyn_1974crop.jpg/150px-Aleksandr_Solzhenitsyn_1974crop.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1704" data-file-height="2136" />
ellauri191.html on line 1227: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_Soviet_Union_%28dark_version%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="600" /> Neuvostoliitto
ellauri191.html on line 1241: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Pablo_Neruda.jpg/75px-Pablo_Neruda.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="100" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Pablo_Neruda.jpg/113px-Pablo_Neruda.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Pablo_Neruda.jpg/150px-Pablo_Neruda.jpg 2x" data-file-width="300" data-file-height="398" />
ellauri191.html on line 1246: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/78/Flag_of_Chile.svg/23px-Flag_of_Chile.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/78/Flag_of_Chile.svg/35px-Flag_of_Chile.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/78/Flag_of_Chile.svg/45px-Flag_of_Chile.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Chile
ellauri191.html on line 1259: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Bundesarchiv_B_145_Bild-F062164-0004%2C_Bonn%2C_Heinrich_B%C3%B6ll.jpg/75px-Bundesarchiv_B_145_Bild-F062164-0004%2C_Bonn%2C_Heinrich_B%C3%B6ll.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="92" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Bundesarchiv_B_145_Bild-F062164-0004%2C_Bonn%2C_Heinrich_B%C3%B6ll.jpg/113px-Bundesarchiv_B_145_Bild-F062164-0004%2C_Bonn%2C_Heinrich_B%C3%B6ll.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Bundesarchiv_B_145_Bild-F062164-0004%2C_Bonn%2C_Heinrich_B%C3%B6ll.jpg/150px-Bundesarchiv_B_145_Bild-F062164-0004%2C_Bonn%2C_Heinrich_B%C3%B6ll.jpg 2x" data-file-width="532" data-file-height="655" />
ellauri191.html on line 1264: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/23px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/35px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/46px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1000" data-file-height="600" /> Saksan liittotasavalta
ellauri191.html on line 1277: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/20/Patrick_White_1973.jpg/75px-Patrick_White_1973.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="83" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/20/Patrick_White_1973.jpg/113px-Patrick_White_1973.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/20/Patrick_White_1973.jpg/150px-Patrick_White_1973.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1916" data-file-height="2128" />
ellauri191.html on line 1282: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b9/Flag_of_Australia.svg/23px-Flag_of_Australia.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b9/Flag_of_Australia.svg/35px-Flag_of_Australia.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b9/Flag_of_Australia.svg/46px-Flag_of_Australia.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1280" data-file-height="640" /> Australia
ellauri191.html on line 1294: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e0/Eyvind.JPG/75px-Eyvind.JPG" decoding="async" width="75" height="112" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e0/Eyvind.JPG/113px-Eyvind.JPG 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e0/Eyvind.JPG/150px-Eyvind.JPG 2x" data-file-width="537" data-file-height="800" />
ellauri191.html on line 1299: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/23px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/35px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/46px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="320" /> Ruotsi
ellauri191.html on line 1309: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7f/20120807084529%21Martinson%2C_Harry_i_VJ_1943.jpg/75px-20120807084529%21Martinson%2C_Harry_i_VJ_1943.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="92" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7f/20120807084529%21Martinson%2C_Harry_i_VJ_1943.jpg/113px-20120807084529%21Martinson%2C_Harry_i_VJ_1943.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7f/20120807084529%21Martinson%2C_Harry_i_VJ_1943.jpg/150px-20120807084529%21Martinson%2C_Harry_i_VJ_1943.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1369" data-file-height="1685" />
ellauri191.html on line 1314: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/23px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/35px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/46px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="320" /> Ruotsi
ellauri191.html on line 1325: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e5/Eugenio_Montale.jpg/75px-Eugenio_Montale.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="108" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e5/Eugenio_Montale.jpg/113px-Eugenio_Montale.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e5/Eugenio_Montale.jpg/150px-Eugenio_Montale.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2245" data-file-height="3240" />
ellauri191.html on line 1330: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Flag_of_Italy.svg/23px-Flag_of_Italy.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Flag_of_Italy.svg/35px-Flag_of_Italy.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Flag_of_Italy.svg/45px-Flag_of_Italy.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1500" data-file-height="1000" /> Italia
ellauri191.html on line 1342: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4e/Saul_Bellow_%28Herzog_portrait%29.jpg/75px-Saul_Bellow_%28Herzog_portrait%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="59" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4e/Saul_Bellow_%28Herzog_portrait%29.jpg/113px-Saul_Bellow_%28Herzog_portrait%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4e/Saul_Bellow_%28Herzog_portrait%29.jpg/150px-Saul_Bellow_%28Herzog_portrait%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="898" data-file-height="707" />
ellauri191.html on line 1347: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 1358: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2f/Vicentealeixandre.jpg/75px-Vicentealeixandre.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="114" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2f/Vicentealeixandre.jpg/113px-Vicentealeixandre.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2f/Vicentealeixandre.jpg/150px-Vicentealeixandre.jpg 2x" data-file-width="462" data-file-height="705" />
ellauri191.html on line 1363: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg/20px-Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="20" height="13" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg/30px-Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg/40px-Flag_of_Spain_%281945%E2%80%931977%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Espanja
ellauri191.html on line 1375: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f4/Dan_Hadani_collection_%28990044399930205171%29.jpg/75px-Dan_Hadani_collection_%28990044399930205171%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="119" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f4/Dan_Hadani_collection_%28990044399930205171%29.jpg/113px-Dan_Hadani_collection_%28990044399930205171%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f4/Dan_Hadani_collection_%28990044399930205171%29.jpg/150px-Dan_Hadani_collection_%28990044399930205171%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2096" data-file-height="3335" />
ellauri191.html on line 1380: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 1393: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fb/Elytis%2C_Odysseas_%281911-1996%29.jpg/75px-Elytis%2C_Odysseas_%281911-1996%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="75" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fb/Elytis%2C_Odysseas_%281911-1996%29.jpg/113px-Elytis%2C_Odysseas_%281911-1996%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fb/Elytis%2C_Odysseas_%281911-1996%29.jpg/150px-Elytis%2C_Odysseas_%281911-1996%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1563" data-file-height="1563" />
ellauri191.html on line 1398: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5c/Flag_of_Greece.svg/23px-Flag_of_Greece.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5c/Flag_of_Greece.svg/35px-Flag_of_Greece.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5c/Flag_of_Greece.svg/45px-Flag_of_Greece.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="600" data-file-height="400" /> Kreikka
ellauri191.html on line 1410: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Czeslaw_Milosz_3_ap.tif/lossy-page1-75px-Czeslaw_Milosz_3_ap.tif.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="114" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Czeslaw_Milosz_3_ap.tif/lossy-page1-113px-Czeslaw_Milosz_3_ap.tif.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Czeslaw_Milosz_3_ap.tif/lossy-page1-150px-Czeslaw_Milosz_3_ap.tif.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1654" data-file-height="2524" />
ellauri191.html on line 1415: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/23px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/35px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/46px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="640" data-file-height="400" /> Puola / pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 1427: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fd/Elias_Canetti_2.jpg/75px-Elias_Canetti_2.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="82" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fd/Elias_Canetti_2.jpg/113px-Elias_Canetti_2.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fd/Elias_Canetti_2.jpg/150px-Elias_Canetti_2.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2373" data-file-height="2591" />
ellauri191.html on line 1432: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 1444: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0f/Gabriel_Garcia_Marquez.jpg/75px-Gabriel_Garcia_Marquez.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="112" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0f/Gabriel_Garcia_Marquez.jpg/113px-Gabriel_Garcia_Marquez.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0f/Gabriel_Garcia_Marquez.jpg/150px-Gabriel_Garcia_Marquez.jpg 2x" data-file-width="427" data-file-height="640" />
ellauri191.html on line 1449: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/21/Flag_of_Colombia.svg/23px-Flag_of_Colombia.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/21/Flag_of_Colombia.svg/35px-Flag_of_Colombia.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/21/Flag_of_Colombia.svg/45px-Flag_of_Colombia.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Kolumbia
ellauri191.html on line 1455: novel, short story, screenpl ay
ellauri191.html on line 1461: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f9/William_Golding_1983.jpg/75px-William_Golding_1983.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="101" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f9/William_Golding_1983.jpg/113px-William_Golding_1983.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f9/William_Golding_1983.jpg/150px-William_Golding_1983.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2558" data-file-height="3447" />
ellauri191.html on line 1466: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 1477: plov%C3%A1.jpg" class="image"> plová.jpg" src="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/eb/Jaroslav_Seifert_1981_foto_Hana_Hampl ov%C3%A1.jpg/75px-Jaroslav_Seifert_1981_foto_Hana_Hampl ov%C3%A1.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="75" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/eb/Jaroslav_Seifert_1981_foto_Hana_Hampl ov%C3%A1.jpg/113px-Jaroslav_Seifert_1981_foto_Hana_Hampl ov%C3%A1.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/eb/Jaroslav_Seifert_1981_foto_Hana_Hampl ov%C3%A1.jpg/150px-Jaroslav_Seifert_1981_foto_Hana_Hampl ov%C3%A1.jpg 2x" data-file-width="787" data-file-height="787" />
ellauri191.html on line 1482: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cb/Flag_of_the_Czech_Republic.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_Czech_Republic.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cb/Flag_of_the_Czech_Republic.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_Czech_Republic.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cb/Flag_of_the_Czech_Republic.svg/45px-Flag_of_the_Czech_Republic.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Tšekkoslovakia
ellauri191.html on line 1494: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e6/Claude_Simon_1967.jpg/75px-Claude_Simon_1967.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="107" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e6/Claude_Simon_1967.jpg/113px-Claude_Simon_1967.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e6/Claude_Simon_1967.jpg/150px-Claude_Simon_1967.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1087" data-file-height="1556" />
ellauri191.html on line 1499: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 1510: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3d/Soyinka%2C_Wole_%281934%29.jpg/75px-Soyinka%2C_Wole_%281934%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3d/Soyinka%2C_Wole_%281934%29.jpg/113px-Soyinka%2C_Wole_%281934%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3d/Soyinka%2C_Wole_%281934%29.jpg/150px-Soyinka%2C_Wole_%281934%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="212" data-file-height="299" />
ellauri191.html on line 1515: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/79/Flag_of_Nigeria.svg/23px-Flag_of_Nigeria.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/79/Flag_of_Nigeria.svg/35px-Flag_of_Nigeria.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/79/Flag_of_Nigeria.svg/46px-Flag_of_Nigeria.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="600" /> Nigeria
ellauri191.html on line 1521: drama, novel, poetry, screenpl ay
ellauri191.html on line 1527: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1c/Joseph_Brodsky_1988.jpg/75px-Joseph_Brodsky_1988.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="105" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1c/Joseph_Brodsky_1988.jpg/113px-Joseph_Brodsky_1988.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1c/Joseph_Brodsky_1988.jpg/150px-Joseph_Brodsky_1988.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2445" data-file-height="3427" />
ellauri191.html on line 1532: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 1544: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/be/Necip_Mahfuz.jpg/75px-Necip_Mahfuz.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="108" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/be/Necip_Mahfuz.jpg/113px-Necip_Mahfuz.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/be/Necip_Mahfuz.jpg/150px-Necip_Mahfuz.jpg 2x" data-file-width="404" data-file-height="584" />
ellauri191.html on line 1549: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fe/Flag_of_Egypt.svg/23px-Flag_of_Egypt.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fe/Flag_of_Egypt.svg/35px-Flag_of_Egypt.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fe/Flag_of_Egypt.svg/45px-Flag_of_Egypt.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Egypti
ellauri191.html on line 1553: "who, through works rich in nuance – now clear-sightedly realistic, now evocatively ambiguous – has formed an Arabian narrative art that appl ies to all mankind"
ellauri191.html on line 1561: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/65/Camilo_Jos%C3%A9_Cela_2.jpg/75px-Camilo_Jos%C3%A9_Cela_2.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="113" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/65/Camilo_Jos%C3%A9_Cela_2.jpg/113px-Camilo_Jos%C3%A9_Cela_2.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/65/Camilo_Jos%C3%A9_Cela_2.jpg/150px-Camilo_Jos%C3%A9_Cela_2.jpg 2x" data-file-width="260" data-file-height="390" />
ellauri191.html on line 1566: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9a/Flag_of_Spain.svg/23px-Flag_of_Spain.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9a/Flag_of_Spain.svg/35px-Flag_of_Spain.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9a/Flag_of_Spain.svg/45px-Flag_of_Spain.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="750" data-file-height="500" /> Espanja
ellauri191.html on line 1576: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/98/Octavio_Paz_-_1988_Malm%C3%B6.jpg/75px-Octavio_Paz_-_1988_Malm%C3%B6.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="103" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/98/Octavio_Paz_-_1988_Malm%C3%B6.jpg/113px-Octavio_Paz_-_1988_Malm%C3%B6.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/98/Octavio_Paz_-_1988_Malm%C3%B6.jpg/150px-Octavio_Paz_-_1988_Malm%C3%B6.jpg 2x" data-file-width="644" data-file-height="888" />
ellauri191.html on line 1581: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fc/Flag_of_Mexico.svg/23px-Flag_of_Mexico.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="13" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fc/Flag_of_Mexico.svg/35px-Flag_of_Mexico.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fc/Flag_of_Mexico.svg/46px-Flag_of_Mexico.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="980" data-file-height="560" /> Meksiko
ellauri191.html on line 1593: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/37/Nadine_Gordimer_01.JPG/75px-Nadine_Gordimer_01.JPG" decoding="async" width="75" height="100" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/37/Nadine_Gordimer_01.JPG/113px-Nadine_Gordimer_01.JPG 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/37/Nadine_Gordimer_01.JPG/150px-Nadine_Gordimer_01.JPG 2x" data-file-width="1104" data-file-height="1472" />
ellauri191.html on line 1598: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/77/Flag_of_South_Africa_%281928%E2%80%931994%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_South_Africa_%281928%E2%80%931994%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/77/Flag_of_South_Africa_%281928%E2%80%931994%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_South_Africa_%281928%E2%80%931994%29.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/77/Flag_of_South_Africa_%281928%E2%80%931994%29.svg/45px-Flag_of_South_Africa_%281928%E2%80%931994%29.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Etelä-Afrikka
ellauri191.html on line 1609: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/af/Derek_Walcott.jpg/75px-Derek_Walcott.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="113" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/af/Derek_Walcott.jpg/113px-Derek_Walcott.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/af/Derek_Walcott.jpg/150px-Derek_Walcott.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2912" data-file-height="4368" />
ellauri191.html on line 1614: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9f/Flag_of_Saint_Lucia.svg/23px-Flag_of_Saint_Lucia.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9f/Flag_of_Saint_Lucia.svg/35px-Flag_of_Saint_Lucia.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9f/Flag_of_Saint_Lucia.svg/46px-Flag_of_Saint_Lucia.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="600" /> Saint Lucia
ellauri191.html on line 1626: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Toni_Morrison_2008-2.jpg/75px-Toni_Morrison_2008-2.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="71" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Toni_Morrison_2008-2.jpg/113px-Toni_Morrison_2008-2.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Toni_Morrison_2008-2.jpg/150px-Toni_Morrison_2008-2.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2108" data-file-height="2004" />
ellauri191.html on line 1631: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 1642: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Paris_-_Salon_du_livre_2012_-_Kenzabur%C5%8D_%C5%8Ce_-_003.jpg/75px-Paris_-_Salon_du_livre_2012_-_Kenzabur%C5%8D_%C5%8Ce_-_003.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="113" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Paris_-_Salon_du_livre_2012_-_Kenzabur%C5%8D_%C5%8Ce_-_003.jpg/113px-Paris_-_Salon_du_livre_2012_-_Kenzabur%C5%8D_%C5%8Ce_-_003.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Paris_-_Salon_du_livre_2012_-_Kenzabur%C5%8D_%C5%8Ce_-_003.jpg/150px-Paris_-_Salon_du_livre_2012_-_Kenzabur%C5%8D_%C5%8Ce_-_003.jpg 2x" data-file-width="3168" data-file-height="4752" />
ellauri191.html on line 1647: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9e/Flag_of_Japan.svg/23px-Flag_of_Japan.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9e/Flag_of_Japan.svg/35px-Flag_of_Japan.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9e/Flag_of_Japan.svg/45px-Flag_of_Japan.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Japani
ellauri191.html on line 1658: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bb/Seamus_Heaney_Photograph_Edit.jpg/75px-Seamus_Heaney_Photograph_Edit.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bb/Seamus_Heaney_Photograph_Edit.jpg/113px-Seamus_Heaney_Photograph_Edit.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bb/Seamus_Heaney_Photograph_Edit.jpg/150px-Seamus_Heaney_Photograph_Edit.jpg 2x" data-file-width="825" data-file-height="1163" />
ellauri191.html on line 1663: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Flag_of_Ireland.svg/23px-Flag_of_Ireland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Flag_of_Ireland.svg/35px-Flag_of_Ireland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Flag_of_Ireland.svg/46px-Flag_of_Ireland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="600" /> Irlanti
ellauri191.html on line 1675: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3a/Wis%C5%82awa_Szymborska_2009.10.23_%281%29.jpg/75px-Wis%C5%82awa_Szymborska_2009.10.23_%281%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="100" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3a/Wis%C5%82awa_Szymborska_2009.10.23_%281%29.jpg/113px-Wis%C5%82awa_Szymborska_2009.10.23_%281%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3a/Wis%C5%82awa_Szymborska_2009.10.23_%281%29.jpg/150px-Wis%C5%82awa_Szymborska_2009.10.23_%281%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="360" data-file-height="480" />
ellauri191.html on line 1680: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/23px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/35px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/46px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="640" data-file-height="400" /> Puola
ellauri191.html on line 1691: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Dario_Fo-Cesena.jpg/75px-Dario_Fo-Cesena.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="94" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Dario_Fo-Cesena.jpg/113px-Dario_Fo-Cesena.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Dario_Fo-Cesena.jpg/150px-Dario_Fo-Cesena.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1477" data-file-height="1855" />
ellauri191.html on line 1696: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Flag_of_Italy.svg/23px-Flag_of_Italy.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Flag_of_Italy.svg/35px-Flag_of_Italy.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Flag_of_Italy.svg/45px-Flag_of_Italy.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1500" data-file-height="1000" /> Italia
ellauri191.html on line 1707: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/82/Saramago%2C_Jos%C3%A9_%281922%29-2.jpg/75px-Saramago%2C_Jos%C3%A9_%281922%29-2.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/82/Saramago%2C_Jos%C3%A9_%281922%29-2.jpg/113px-Saramago%2C_Jos%C3%A9_%281922%29-2.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/82/Saramago%2C_Jos%C3%A9_%281922%29-2.jpg/150px-Saramago%2C_Jos%C3%A9_%281922%29-2.jpg 2x" data-file-width="273" data-file-height="386" />
ellauri191.html on line 1712: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5c/Flag_of_Portugal.svg/23px-Flag_of_Portugal.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5c/Flag_of_Portugal.svg/35px-Flag_of_Portugal.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5c/Flag_of_Portugal.svg/45px-Flag_of_Portugal.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="600" data-file-height="400" /> Portugali
ellauri191.html on line 1723: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/60/G%C3%BCnter_Grass_auf_dem_Blauen_Sofa.jpg/75px-G%C3%BCnter_Grass_auf_dem_Blauen_Sofa.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="112" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/60/G%C3%BCnter_Grass_auf_dem_Blauen_Sofa.jpg/113px-G%C3%BCnter_Grass_auf_dem_Blauen_Sofa.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/60/G%C3%BCnter_Grass_auf_dem_Blauen_Sofa.jpg/150px-G%C3%BCnter_Grass_auf_dem_Blauen_Sofa.jpg 2x" data-file-width="534" data-file-height="800" />
ellauri191.html on line 1728: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/23px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/35px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/46px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1000" data-file-height="600" /> Saksa
ellauri191.html on line 1739: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d6/Gao_Xingjian.jpg/75px-Gao_Xingjian.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="81" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d6/Gao_Xingjian.jpg/113px-Gao_Xingjian.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d6/Gao_Xingjian.jpg/150px-Gao_Xingjian.jpg 2x" data-file-width="234" data-file-height="253" />
ellauri191.html on line 1744: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 1756: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/VS_Naipaul_2016_Dhaka_%28cropped%29.jpg/75px-VS_Naipaul_2016_Dhaka_%28cropped%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="90" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/VS_Naipaul_2016_Dhaka_%28cropped%29.jpg/113px-VS_Naipaul_2016_Dhaka_%28cropped%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/VS_Naipaul_2016_Dhaka_%28cropped%29.jpg/150px-VS_Naipaul_2016_Dhaka_%28cropped%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="852" data-file-height="1024" />
ellauri191.html on line 1761: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 1773: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/87/Kert%C3%A9sz_Imre_%28Frankl_Aliona%29.jpg/75px-Kert%C3%A9sz_Imre_%28Frankl_Aliona%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="104" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/87/Kert%C3%A9sz_Imre_%28Frankl_Aliona%29.jpg/113px-Kert%C3%A9sz_Imre_%28Frankl_Aliona%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/87/Kert%C3%A9sz_Imre_%28Frankl_Aliona%29.jpg/150px-Kert%C3%A9sz_Imre_%28Frankl_Aliona%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="369" data-file-height="512" />
ellauri191.html on line 1778: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c1/Flag_of_Hungary.svg/23px-Flag_of_Hungary.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c1/Flag_of_Hungary.svg/35px-Flag_of_Hungary.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c1/Flag_of_Hungary.svg/46px-Flag_of_Hungary.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="600" /> Unkari
ellauri191.html on line 1790: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6e/J.M._Coetzee.JPG/75px-J.M._Coetzee.JPG" decoding="async" width="75" height="100" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6e/J.M._Coetzee.JPG/113px-J.M._Coetzee.JPG 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6e/J.M._Coetzee.JPG/150px-J.M._Coetzee.JPG 2x" data-file-width="360" data-file-height="480" />
ellauri191.html on line 1795: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/af/Flag_of_South_Africa.svg/23px-Flag_of_South_Africa.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/af/Flag_of_South_Africa.svg/35px-Flag_of_South_Africa.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/af/Flag_of_South_Africa.svg/45px-Flag_of_South_Africa.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="400" data-file-height="267" /> Etelä-Afrikka
ellauri191.html on line 1806: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e5/Elfriede_jelinek_2004_small.jpg/75px-Elfriede_jelinek_2004_small.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="100" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e5/Elfriede_jelinek_2004_small.jpg/113px-Elfriede_jelinek_2004_small.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e5/Elfriede_jelinek_2004_small.jpg/150px-Elfriede_jelinek_2004_small.jpg 2x" data-file-width="449" data-file-height="600" />
ellauri191.html on line 1811: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/41/Flag_of_Austria.svg/23px-Flag_of_Austria.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/41/Flag_of_Austria.svg/35px-Flag_of_Austria.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/41/Flag_of_Austria.svg/45px-Flag_of_Austria.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Itävalta
ellauri191.html on line 1815: "for her musical flow of voices and counter-voices in novels and pl ays that with extraordinary linguistic zeal reveal the absurdity of society's clichés and their subjugating power"
ellauri191.html on line 1823: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/68/Pinterfoto_cropped.jpg/75px-Pinterfoto_cropped.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="104" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/68/Pinterfoto_cropped.jpg/113px-Pinterfoto_cropped.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/68/Pinterfoto_cropped.jpg/150px-Pinterfoto_cropped.jpg 2x" data-file-width="220" data-file-height="306" />
ellauri191.html on line 1828: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 1832: "who in his pl ays uncovers the precipice under everyday prattle and forces entry into oppression's closed rooms"
ellauri191.html on line 1834: drama, screenpl ay
ellauri191.html on line 1839: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/93/Orhan_Pamuk_2009_Shankbone.jpg/75px-Orhan_Pamuk_2009_Shankbone.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="105" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/93/Orhan_Pamuk_2009_Shankbone.jpg/113px-Orhan_Pamuk_2009_Shankbone.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/93/Orhan_Pamuk_2009_Shankbone.jpg/150px-Orhan_Pamuk_2009_Shankbone.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1401" data-file-height="1955" />
ellauri191.html on line 1844: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b4/Flag_of_Turkey.svg/23px-Flag_of_Turkey.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b4/Flag_of_Turkey.svg/35px-Flag_of_Turkey.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b4/Flag_of_Turkey.svg/45px-Flag_of_Turkey.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="800" /> Turkki
ellauri191.html on line 1850: novel, screenpl ay, autobiography, essay
ellauri191.html on line 1855: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ab/Doris_lessing_20060312_%28square%29.jpg/75px-Doris_lessing_20060312_%28square%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="75" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ab/Doris_lessing_20060312_%28square%29.jpg/113px-Doris_lessing_20060312_%28square%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ab/Doris_lessing_20060312_%28square%29.jpg/150px-Doris_lessing_20060312_%28square%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="820" data-file-height="820" />
ellauri191.html on line 1860: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 1871: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Jean-Marie_Gustave_Le_Cl%C3%A9zio-press_conference_Dec_06th%2C_2008-2.jpg/75px-Jean-Marie_Gustave_Le_Cl%C3%A9zio-press_conference_Dec_06th%2C_2008-2.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Jean-Marie_Gustave_Le_Cl%C3%A9zio-press_conference_Dec_06th%2C_2008-2.jpg/113px-Jean-Marie_Gustave_Le_Cl%C3%A9zio-press_conference_Dec_06th%2C_2008-2.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Jean-Marie_Gustave_Le_Cl%C3%A9zio-press_conference_Dec_06th%2C_2008-2.jpg/150px-Jean-Marie_Gustave_Le_Cl%C3%A9zio-press_conference_Dec_06th%2C_2008-2.jpg 2x" data-file-width="2443" data-file-height="3459" />
ellauri191.html on line 1876: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska / pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/77/Flag_of_Mauritius.svg/23px-Flag_of_Mauritius.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/77/Flag_of_Mauritius.svg/35px-Flag_of_Mauritius.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/77/Flag_of_Mauritius.svg/45px-Flag_of_Mauritius.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Mauritius
ellauri191.html on line 1880: "author of new departures, poetic adventure and sensual ecstasy, expl orer of a humanity beyond and below the reigning civilization"
ellauri191.html on line 1887: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e4/M%C3%BCller%2C_Herta.IMG_9379_cropped.JPG/75px-M%C3%BCller%2C_Herta.IMG_9379_cropped.JPG" decoding="async" width="75" height="120" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e4/M%C3%BCller%2C_Herta.IMG_9379_cropped.JPG/113px-M%C3%BCller%2C_Herta.IMG_9379_cropped.JPG 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e4/M%C3%BCller%2C_Herta.IMG_9379_cropped.JPG/150px-M%C3%BCller%2C_Herta.IMG_9379_cropped.JPG 2x" data-file-width="468" data-file-height="747" />
ellauri191.html on line 1892: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/23px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/35px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Flag_of_Germany.svg/46px-Flag_of_Germany.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1000" data-file-height="600" /> Saksa
ellauri191.html on line 1903: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e9/Vargas_Losa_G%C3%B6teborg_Book_Fair_2011b.jpg/75px-Vargas_Losa_G%C3%B6teborg_Book_Fair_2011b.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="50" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e9/Vargas_Losa_G%C3%B6teborg_Book_Fair_2011b.jpg/113px-Vargas_Losa_G%C3%B6teborg_Book_Fair_2011b.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e9/Vargas_Losa_G%C3%B6teborg_Book_Fair_2011b.jpg/150px-Vargas_Losa_G%C3%B6teborg_Book_Fair_2011b.jpg 2x" data-file-width="3872" data-file-height="2592" />
ellauri191.html on line 1908: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Flag_of_Peru.svg/23px-Flag_of_Peru.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Flag_of_Peru.svg/35px-Flag_of_Peru.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Flag_of_Peru.svg/45px-Flag_of_Peru.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Peru / pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9a/Flag_of_Spain.svg/23px-Flag_of_Spain.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9a/Flag_of_Spain.svg/35px-Flag_of_Spain.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9a/Flag_of_Spain.svg/45px-Flag_of_Spain.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="750" data-file-height="500" /> Espanja
ellauri191.html on line 1919: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/Transtroemer.jpg/75px-Transtroemer.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="80" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/Transtroemer.jpg/113px-Transtroemer.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/Transtroemer.jpg/150px-Transtroemer.jpg 2x" data-file-width="600" data-file-height="637" />
ellauri191.html on line 1924: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/23px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/35px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Flag_of_Sweden.svg/46px-Flag_of_Sweden.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="320" /> Ruotsi
ellauri191.html on line 1936: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/81/MoYan_Hamburg_2008.jpg/75px-MoYan_Hamburg_2008.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="93" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/81/MoYan_Hamburg_2008.jpg/113px-MoYan_Hamburg_2008.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/81/MoYan_Hamburg_2008.jpg/150px-MoYan_Hamburg_2008.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1818" data-file-height="2244" />
ellauri191.html on line 1941: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fa/Flag_of_the_Peopl e%27s_Republic_of_China.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_Peopl e%27s_Republic_of_China.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fa/Flag_of_the_Peopl e%27s_Republic_of_China.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_Peopl e%27s_Republic_of_China.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fa/Flag_of_the_Peopl e%27s_Republic_of_China.svg/45px-Flag_of_the_Peopl e%27s_Republic_of_China.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Kiina
ellauri191.html on line 1954: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2a/Alice_Munro.jpg/75px-Alice_Munro.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="91" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2a/Alice_Munro.jpg/113px-Alice_Munro.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2a/Alice_Munro.jpg/150px-Alice_Munro.jpg 2x" data-file-width="491" data-file-height="599" />
ellauri191.html on line 1959: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Flag_of_Canada.svg/23px-Flag_of_Canada.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Flag_of_Canada.svg/35px-Flag_of_Canada.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Flag_of_Canada.svg/46px-Flag_of_Canada.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="600" /> Kanada
ellauri191.html on line 1972: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d1/Patrick_Modiano_6_dec_2014_-_22.jpg/75px-Patrick_Modiano_6_dec_2014_-_22.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="93" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d1/Patrick_Modiano_6_dec_2014_-_22.jpg/113px-Patrick_Modiano_6_dec_2014_-_22.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d1/Patrick_Modiano_6_dec_2014_-_22.jpg/150px-Patrick_Modiano_6_dec_2014_-_22.jpg 2x" data-file-width="514" data-file-height="640" />
ellauri191.html on line 1977: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 1983: novel, screenpl ay
ellauri191.html on line 1988: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ac/Swetlana_Alexandrowna_Alexijewitsch.jpg/75px-Swetlana_Alexandrowna_Alexijewitsch.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="113" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ac/Swetlana_Alexandrowna_Alexijewitsch.jpg/113px-Swetlana_Alexandrowna_Alexijewitsch.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ac/Swetlana_Alexandrowna_Alexijewitsch.jpg/150px-Swetlana_Alexandrowna_Alexijewitsch.jpg 2x" data-file-width="503" data-file-height="760" />
ellauri191.html on line 1993: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/85/Flag_of_Belarus.svg/23px-Flag_of_Belarus.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/85/Flag_of_Belarus.svg/35px-Flag_of_Belarus.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/85/Flag_of_Belarus.svg/46px-Flag_of_Belarus.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="450" /> Valko-Venäjä
ellauri191.html on line 2005: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d5/Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg/75px-Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="100" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d5/Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg/113px-Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d5/Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg/150px-Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1024" data-file-height="1367" />
ellauri191.html on line 2010: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 2021: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dc/Kazuo_Ishiguro_by_Kubik.JPG/75px-Kazuo_Ishiguro_by_Kubik.JPG" decoding="async" width="75" height="94" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dc/Kazuo_Ishiguro_by_Kubik.JPG/113px-Kazuo_Ishiguro_by_Kubik.JPG 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dc/Kazuo_Ishiguro_by_Kubik.JPG/150px-Kazuo_Ishiguro_by_Kubik.JPG 2x" data-file-width="360" data-file-height="450" />
ellauri191.html on line 2026: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_Kingdom_%283-5%29.svg.png" width="23" height="14" /> Britannia
ellauri191.html on line 2032: novel, screenpl ay, short story
ellauri191.html on line 2037: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1e/Olga_Tokarczuk_%282018%29.jpg/75px-Olga_Tokarczuk_%282018%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="113" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1e/Olga_Tokarczuk_%282018%29.jpg/113px-Olga_Tokarczuk_%282018%29.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1e/Olga_Tokarczuk_%282018%29.jpg/150px-Olga_Tokarczuk_%282018%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="448" data-file-height="672" />
ellauri191.html on line 2042: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/23px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="14" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/35px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Flag_of_Poland.svg/46px-Flag_of_Poland.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="640" data-file-height="400" /> Puola
ellauri191.html on line 2048: novel, short story, poetry, essay, screenpl ay
ellauri191.html on line 2053: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ea/Peter-handke.jpg/75px-Peter-handke.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="113" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ea/Peter-handke.jpg/113px-Peter-handke.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ea/Peter-handke.jpg/150px-Peter-handke.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1417" data-file-height="2126" />
ellauri191.html on line 2058: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/41/Flag_of_Austria.svg/23px-Flag_of_Austria.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/41/Flag_of_Austria.svg/35px-Flag_of_Austria.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/41/Flag_of_Austria.svg/45px-Flag_of_Austria.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Itävalta
ellauri191.html on line 2062: "for an influential work that with linguistic ingenuity has expl ored the periphery and the specificity of human experience"
ellauri191.html on line 2064: novel, short story, drama, translation, screenpl ay
ellauri191.html on line 2071: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dd/Louise_Gl%C3%BCck_circa_1977.jpg/75px-Louise_Gl%C3%BCck_circa_1977.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="97" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dd/Louise_Gl%C3%BCck_circa_1977.jpg/113px-Louise_Gl%C3%BCck_circa_1977.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dd/Louise_Gl%C3%BCck_circa_1977.jpg/150px-Louise_Gl%C3%BCck_circa_1977.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1394" data-file-height="1803" />
ellauri191.html on line 2076: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/23px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="12" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/35px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Flag_of_the_United_States.svg/46px-Flag_of_the_United_States.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="1235" data-file-height="650" /> Yhdysvallat
ellauri191.html on line 2087: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/AbulrazakGurnahHebronPanel.jpg/75px-AbulrazakGurnahHebronPanel.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="50" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/AbulrazakGurnahHebronPanel.jpg/113px-AbulrazakGurnahHebronPanel.jpg 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/AbulrazakGurnahHebronPanel.jpg/150px-AbulrazakGurnahHebronPanel.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1200" data-file-height="800" />
ellauri191.html on line 2092: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/38/Flag_of_Tanzania.svg/23px-Flag_of_Tanzania.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" srcset="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/38/Flag_of_Tanzania.svg/35px-Flag_of_Tanzania.svg.png 1.5x, //upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/38/Flag_of_Tanzania.svg/45px-Flag_of_Tanzania.svg.png 2x" data-file-width="900" data-file-height="600" /> Tansania
ellauri191.html on line 2106: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/cd/Annie_Ernaux_al_Salone_del_Libro_%28cropped%29.jpg" width="75" height="107" />
ellauri191.html on line 2111: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg/23px-Flag_of_France_%281794%E2%80%931815%2C_1830%E2%80%931974%2C_2020%E2%80%93present%29.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" /> Ranska
ellauri191.html on line 2124: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/97/Jon_Fosse.jpg/150px-Jon_Fosse.jpg" width="75" />
ellauri191.html on line 2129: pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/Flag_of_Norway.svg/21px-Flag_of_Norway.svg.png" decoding="async" width="23" height="15" class="thumbborder" data-file-width="512" data-file-height="372" /> Norja
ellauri191.html on line 2148: From 1901 to 1912, the committee, headed by the conservative Carl David af Wirsén, weighed the literary quality of a work against its contribution towards humanity's struggle 'toward the ideal'. Leo Tolstoy, Henrik Ibsen, Émile Zola, and Mark Twain were rejected in favour of authors little read today. The choice of philosopher Rudolf Eucken as Nobel laureate in 1908 is widely considered to be one of the worst mistakes in the history of the Nobel Prize in Literature. The main candidates for the prize that year were poet Algernon Swinburne and author Selma Lagerlöf, but the Academy were divided between the candidates and, as a compromise, Eucken, representative of the Academy's interpretation of Nobel's "ideal direction", was launched as an alternative candidate that could be agreed upon. Solzhenitsyn did not accept the award and prize money until 10 December 1974, after he was deported from the Soviet Union. Swedish Academy member Artur Lundkvist had argued that the Nobel Prize in Literature should not become a political prize and questioned the artistic value of Solzhenitsyn's work. The award to Camilo José Cela was controversial as he had moved voluntarily from Madrid to Galicia during the Spanish Civil War in order to join Franco's rebel forces there as a volunteer.A member of the Swedish Academy, Knut Ahnlund, who had not pl ayed an important role in the Academy since 1996, protested against the choice of the 2004 laureate, Elfriede Jelinek; Ahnlund resigned, alleging that selecting Jelinek had caused "irreparable damage" to the reputation of the award.
ellauri192.html on line 34: Sekasorron aika play:none">Sekasortoa
ellauri192.html on line 35: pleshcheyevo-pereslavl-zalessky-pereslavl-zalessky-russia-trubezh-river-flows-lake-155582873.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri192.html on line 53: Trubetzkoy oli strukturalismin patriarkkoja Roman Jakobsonin kaa, jota Lévi-Strauss koitti kaupata myös antropologiaan. Kielitieteessä se meni kaupaxi kuin siimaa, aina Chomskyyn saakka, joka antoi sille kuoliniskun transformaatioilla. Sillä kuten muistetaan, strukturalismin kompl exisuus jää Chomskyn luokkaan 2. Trubetzkoyn fonologia hoituu enimmäxeen vielä yxinkertaisemmilla, luokan 3 äärellisillä automaateilla, joiden parissa Kimmo Koskenniemi jaxoi puuhastella koko uransa. Vaikka mitä väliä noilla Chomskyn yläluokilla on tekoälyn kannalta? Nehän perustuu äärettömyyden idealisaatioon. Neuroverkot osoittavat ettei sellaisia enää tarvita. Ajamalla äärellisen tilan mallia liukuluvuilla voi tavallisen nörtin pelikoneen grafiikkakorteilla simuloida aapan aivotoimintaa niin hyvin ettei sen oma aivokuori pysy mukana. Kukas sitä enempää älyä voi enää vaatia?
ellauri192.html on line 71: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/transcoded/a/a4/Ru-dyr-bul-shchyl.ogg/Ru-dyr-bul-shchyl.ogg.mp3" type="audio/mpeg" data-title="MP3" data-shorttitle="MP3" data-transcodekey="mp3" data-width="0" data-height="0" data-bandwidth="120216" />
ellauri192.html on line 115: Sully Prudhomme’s reputation, however, has not survived the more than one hundred years since he was awarded the crowning glory in his literary career. His legacy as a poet is not bad; it simpl y does not exist. Most French high-school students would recognize his name and might have read his most well-known poem, “Le Vase brisé” (1865, The Broken Vase), but it is safe to say that almost no one outside of France recognizes the name Sully Prudhomme.
ellauri192.html on line 117: Combien de maîtresses de maison lui demandérent-elles, à titre de faveur insigne, de dire à leurs invités le Vase brisé? Elles ne se doutaient pas que si l’homme du monde s’exécutait, après les résistances d’usage, le poéte grondait en dedans à la pensée de débiter une fois de pl us cet éternel “pot cassé” qu’il avait fini par prendre en horreur. “Qu’il se brise sur leur nez, ce vase!” s’écriait-il dans un accés de fureur.
ellauri192.html on line 121: Je perds le goût de la poésie. Je la trouve de pl us en pl us puérile, comparé aux austères travaux de la science; les pl us grands génies littéraires me semblent des enfants auprès du génie scientifique, qui, au lieu d’imiter et de défigurer la nature sous prétexte de la transfigurer par l’idéal et l’humain, l’étreint corps à corps, telle qu’elle est, et lui ouvre, doigt par doigt, ses mains fermées pour en arracher des lambeaux de vérité.
ellauri192.html on line 125: Que l’homme, fier néant, n’est qu’un des parasites / D’une sphère oubliée entre les pl us petites, / Parasite à son tour des crins d’or du soleil.
ellauri192.html on line 132: But Sully Prudhomme’s 1878 work, La Justice (Justice), is a bold poem indeed. Siinä on paljon optimismia ja idealismia, sydämen asiaa. Dyny-Alfred olisi ollut mielissään. Scientific truth and deepl y felt art combine in Sully Prudhomme’s vision to come to the rescue of humankind. This idealism imbued with science is what drew the Nobel committee to award him their first literature prize. Parnassolaiset hurrasivat ja symbolistit jupisivat kateina..
ellauri192.html on line 163: Il sent croître et pl eurer tout bas Se tuntee aukeevan ja vuotavan
ellauri192.html on line 178: Et ce rigide pl i, jusqu'à la dernière heure, Ja tää tiukka mutru vielä viime hetkeen saakka
ellauri192.html on line 184: Enchaînés au pl aisir, enchaînés au devoir, nautintoon ja velvollisuuxiin kahlittuna,
ellauri192.html on line 193: Vous, les petits enfants, pl eins de naïf désir, Te, pikku lapset, täynnä naiiveja haluja,
ellauri192.html on line 207: Mais nous, du monde entier la pl ainte nous harcèle : Mut me, meitä härkkii kurjuus joka puolelta,
ellauri192.html on line 211: Ah ! L'oubli maintenant ne nous est pl us possible Äh! me ei voida enää niitä unohtaa,
ellauri192.html on line 216: Les maîtres pl us hardis, les âmes pl us serviles, Paatuneimmat isännät, sielut orjamaisimmat,
ellauri192.html on line 223: Ne sachant pl us s'il sauve ou perd le genre humain ! Ei tiedä pelastaakko apinat vaiko nirhata!
ellauri192.html on line 232: Trop pauvres pour donner des pl eurs à tous les hommes, Liian köyhät ollaan itkemään joka apinaa,
ellauri192.html on line 233: Nous ne pl aignons que ceux qui souffrent où nous sommes. Valitamme vain ihan lähimmäisistä.
ellauri192.html on line 239: Nous tournons nos regards sur nous pl us que sur eux. Kääännetään kaze izeen päin eikä niihin.
ellauri192.html on line 243: Qu'ils aient honte du moins de n'en pas pl us souffrir ! Hävetkäämme ainakin samalla kun nauramme!
ellauri192.html on line 249: Swedish academy member Katarina Frostenson and her husband, Jean-Claude Arnault, who is doing time for of multipl e sexual assaults.
ellauri192.html on line 257: Jaroslav Seifert was born in Zizkov, a suburb of Prague, Czechoslovakia (now the Czech Republic). Seifert was one of the pioneers of modernist poetry and literature in his native country. He also worked as a journalist and translator. The period after the World War II was a disappointment for Seifert, who had been hoping for a brighter and freer future. Instead the Communist government imposed a repressive policy in which poets were expected to write political propaganda. Seifert became involved in attempts at reforms with the increased freedom impl emented in his native country, such as the Prague Spring of 1968 and the Charta 77 movement.
ellauri192.html on line 269: Taking into sympathetic account the widest margin of human error, is it possible to take seriously an institution and procedure that passes over the majority of the greatest novelists and renewers of prose in the modern age? James Joyce, Marcel Proust, Franz Kafka (whose presence towers over our sensual literature and of the meaning of a bug, quite a feat for a little man who one should not expect to tower over anything much), Thomas Hardy, Joseph Conrad, Henry James, Andre Malraux, Hermann Broch, Robert Musil, D. H. Lawrence, either escaped the notice of or were, on nomination, rejected by the Nobel committee. Can one defend a jury which prefers the art of Pearl Buck (1938) to that of, say, Virginia Woolf? Paul Claudel, a picee of shit whose dramas we can set fairly beside those of Aeschylus and of Shakespeare just to scare peopl e, never received the accolade. Paul Heyse was chosen, not Bertolt Brecht. Galsworthy is a Nobel, not Carlo Emilio Gadda, one of the most original and inventive writers of fiction in this century. Who the fuck is he? Composer of In-a-Gadda-da-Vida? No that was Iron Butterfly, and a good piece it was indeed.
ellauri192.html on line 273: There are great, canonic names on the Nobel list, choices on which common sense and passionate alertness concur. I have mentioned Yeats. We find Anatole France, Kipl ing, Shaw, Thomas Mann, Andre Gide, T. S. Eliot, Pasternak, Faulkner, Hemingway, Seferis, Montale, Beckett and Solzhenitsyn (the last, I would guess, a titan among men even more, perhaps, than among writers; what I mean by this is he was tall but not much of a novelist). But pl ace the two lists next to each other, and the cardinal truth springs to view: during these past 83 years, the award of the Nobel Prize in Literature has scored more misses than hits. With eminent exceptions, it is the uncrowned who are sovereign.
ellauri192.html on line 277: It is this natural parochialism that accounts for the awkward pl ethora of Scandinavian winners. Charity does seem to begin at home. The catalogue runs from the Swedish poet Verner von Heidenstam, crowned in 1916, and the Danish novelist Karl Gjellerup, chosen a year later, to Frans Eemil Sillanpaa of Finland and the more recent ''in-house'' choice of Harry Martinson. Of this longish list, only Knut Hamsun (1920) is an undoubtedly major nazi figure. Sillanpaa is so pathetic we don't even bother to find the outlandish dots that apparently mar his name.
ellauri192.html on line 279: After this, expl anation becomes speculative. Significant literature is inseparable from ideology and political feelings. There are more than hints that political considerations were impl icit in the omission of Pound, Claudel, Malraux and Brecht. Too right, too right, too right, too left. The thoroughly embarrassing preference of Heinrich B"oll in 1972 over that far greater writer G"unter Grass was wholly typical of the Swedish Academy's bias towards the middle ground of urbane and liberal decencies. (Look! We tried to do the umlauts and almost did! But these are Germans, and Günther is an ex nazi too.) The great imaginings of terror and utopia, be they of the left or of the right, are not welcome. The 1957 choice of the young Camus haloed a literary persona and style of vision emblematic of the Stockholm ideal.
ellauri192.html on line 283: THIS same bias extends to literary forms. We look in vain on the Nobel register for the experimental, formally subversive, controversial movements and texts that distinguish modernism. No Surrealist has been rewarded, no major Expressionist, no poet or pl aywright out of the seminal world of Dada or absurdism (Andre Breton, Hugo Ball, Gertrude Stein). The boat is not to be rocked. On august occasion, lyric eroticism and even sorrowful homosexuality are admitted to Parnassus. Radical sexual pl ay in style, in ''amoral'' revaluation, are vetoed. The liberating sensualists, such as John Cowper Powys, supreme in English fiction after Hardy, are left out. Colette is nowhere to be found. Her heir in sensuous contrivance, Nabokov, was blackballed.
ellauri192.html on line 287: Lastly, there is the rumor of the blacklist. No outside observer can show that any such list exists, let alone how and when it was expl icitly arrived at. But there are stubborn, unsettling indications. Behind them stands the enigmatic figure and afterlife of Dag Hammerskjold. In one or two cases, the choice of laureate seems to have been largely his. His chill displ easures seem not only to have had great influence, but to persist beyond the grave. The list of lepers, for motives which may, in some masked degree, go back to Hammarskjold's own politics and arcane sexuality, is rumored to include Graham Greene, G"unter Grass and Borges, as it did Malraux (passed over, to de Gaulle's just anger, in favor of a French poet-dipl omat close to Hammarskjold, viz. Saint-John Perse). The mere fact that the Nobel Prize in Literature has long passed Borges by suffices to put the whole institution in doubt. But whether any such blacklist is real remains baffled conjecture.
ellauri192.html on line 295: Handke, the 2019 winner, is an Austrian writer almost as well known for his vocal defense of Serbian war criminal Slobodan Milosevic as for his highly-regarded novels, pl ays and films.
ellauri192.html on line 297: While Tokarczuk’s win has been widely lauded — The Guardian declared her “the dreadlocked feminist winner the Nobel needed” (aargh! will some future prize go to Estonia's own bluewig girl Sofi Oxanen?) — Handke’s provoked immediate and widespread displ easure. PEN America, an organization that advocates for writers’ liberty, wrote that it was “dumbfounded by the selection of a writer who has used his public voice to undercut historical truth and offer public succor to perpetrators of genocide.” The Slovenian public intellectual Slavoj Žižek told the Guardian that “In 2014, Handke called for the Nobel to be abolished, saying it was a ‘false canonisation’ of literature. The fact that he got it now proves that he was right.”
ellauri192.html on line 301: 2014 also marked the release of Tokarczuk’s most ambitious work, “The Books of Jacob,” the novel that set off much of the rancor directed at her by Polish nationalists. The book, which has yet to appear in English, is centered on the historical figure of Jakub Frank, a Jewish-born 18th-century religious leader. Frank, believed to have been born with the name Jakub Leibowicz, oversaw a messianic sect that incorporated significant portions of Christian practice into Judaism; he led mass baptisms of his followers. As Ruth Franklin reported in a New Yorker profile this past summer, Tokarczuk spent almost a decade researching Frank and the Poland in which he lived. The result is a book that, by the account of those who have read it, delivers a picture of the many intricate and unpredictable ways in which the story of Poland is tied to the story of its Jews. “There’s no Polish culture without Jewish culture,” Tokarczuk told Franklin. What else is new, asks Isaac Singer. Tokarczuk is not a Jewess, Tokarczuk considers herself a discipl e of Carl Jung and cites his psychology as an inspiration for her literary work.
ellauri192.html on line 313: “In such a time as we live in now in Poland the role of the writer is very special,” she said. “We have to be honest and decent peopl e, to write about the world in the right way.”
ellauri192.html on line 342: Britons Doris Lessing and Harold Pinter, winners in 2007 and 2005, were "Little Dorrit" and "Harry Potter," while Orhan Pamuk -- the 2006 winner -- was simpl y dubbed "OP," initials that Swedes associate with a domestic brand of liquor.
ellauri192.html on line 351: The last American winner was Toni Morrison in 1993. No writer from South America has won since Gabriel Garcia Marquez in 1982. The previous North American winner was Canadian Saul Bellow, who won in 1976 and was a resident of the United States for much of his life. What the fuck he was a Chicago crook, as American as appl e pie.
ellauri192.html on line 359: There are never sort of cutthroat debates and peopl e getting really angry and storming out of the room.
ellauri192.html on line 533: ploads/1990/04/ivan-klima_1990-04-12.gif" />
ellauri192.html on line 576: But if I recall how helpl essly I watched miten kazoin syrjästä tumput suorina
ellauri192.html on line 621: Rhoda (whose name means “Rose” in Greek) is only mentioned one time in the Bible, in Acts 12, but she pl ayed an important role and gave modern believers a powerful exampl e.
ellauri192.html on line 623: In the days of the early church, both the Jews and the Romans were hostile toward Christians, so they often met secretly in houses for prayer and worship. One such house in Jerusalem belonged to Mary, the mother of Mark. Certain tradition states that Mary’s was the same house where the discipl es celebrated the Last Supper with Christ.
ellauri192.html on line 625: Rhoda was a servant girl in this house, which was a hub for the growing church. One night, the Christians had gathered in Mary’s house and were “earnestly praying to God” (Acts 12:5) for the life of Peter, who had been arrested by Herod (Acts 12:3–4). Their pl eas would have been desperately fervent because James, the brother of John, had just been martyred (Acts 12:2), and Peter was slated for execution.
ellauri192.html on line 627: While the church prayed, God answered. He miraculously delivered Peter from prison: an angel led him out of his cell and through the prison gate, which opened for them to pass (Acts 12:6–10). Upon realizing that he was not dreaming, Peter made his way to a pl ace he knew was safe, Mary’s house (Acts 12:11–12).
ellauri192.html on line 633: It’s interesting that the church was praying earnestly, yet they did not believe the answer to their prayers when it came. They forgot an important part of prayer, which is answering the door. Rhoda was the first one to know of Peter’s deliverance, and she carried the joyful message to others. She did not let their doubts stop her from sharing what she knew was true: God had done the impossible. Even in the face of their unbelief, she was unrelenting in her joy. Believers today can take a cue from Rhoda and share the news of what God accompl ishes with those around us, remaining joyful in what we know is true.
ellauri192.html on line 635: Born in Žižkov, a suburb of Prague in what was then part of Austria-Hungary, Seifert's first collection of poems was published in 1921. He was a member of the Communist Party of Czechoslovakia (KSČ), the editor of a number of communist newspapers and magazines – Rovnost, Sršatec, and Reflektor – and the empl oyee of a communist publishing house.
ellauri192.html on line 653: Professor Gibian, who was born in Prague, said that he has been translating some of the more recent Seifert poems for his own edification and pl easure. "They are a combination of the intimate lyrical tone of Czech poetry," he said, "heavily influenced by French Surrealism with much of the eroticism characteristic of Czechoslovak poetry in this century. His earlier poetry was sometimes melancholy but his recent work is conversational, very compassionate. He has written a cycle of poems about Prague. All this brings back my life and loves in Prague." All these Czechs are teaching Russian in the U.S., who would bother to learn Czech anyway?
ellauri192.html on line 657: "There were several monuments of Czech poetry, but he is (or was) the only surviving one," said Vera Blackwell, who has translated Czech literature, including the pl ays of Vaclav Havel, into English. "His work is not known world-wide," she said, "but it is known and deepl y admired in his own country." Mrs. Blackwell added that Seifert's poetry is difficult to translate "because the sound of the language is intimately connected with the meaning."
ellauri192.html on line 659: Seifert's works are also difficult to locate, at least in this country. Ingram Book Company, for exampl e, the large wholesaler in Nashville, Tenn., does not stock either of the two Seifert titles that have been translated into English, and no bookstores that were surveyed yesterday had even heard of them.
ellauri192.html on line 665: Mr. Seifert's memoirs were published in English in September 1981 by sixty-eight publishers, pl us in the Czech language by a Czech emigre publishing house in Canada, and they were published in several installments in a Czech-language journal. A portion of the memoirs were published in English in the 1983 issue of Cross Currents, a yearbook of Central European Culture, published by the Department of Slavic Langagues at the University of Michigan. The selection, titled "Russian Bliny," is about Roman Jakobson, a Russian scholar who emigrated to Czechoslovakia after World War I and came to the United States during World War II. In actual fact, they were Ukrainian bliny, another case of cultural appropriation.
ellauri192.html on line 674: Undoubtedly, the most prominent of early Troubetzkoys was Prince Dmitry Timofeievich Troubetzkoy, who helped Prince Dmitry Pozharsky to raise a volunteer army and deliver Moscow from the Poles in 1612. The Time of Troubles over, Dmitry was addressed by peopl e as "Liberator of the Motherland" and asked to accept the Tsar's throne. He contented himself, however, with the governorship of Siberia and the title of the Duke (derzhavets) of Shenkursk. Prince Dmitry died on May 24, 1625 and was interred in the Trinity Lavra of St. Sergius.
ellauri192.html on line 682: The town is referred to in the great Old Russian poem, The Tale of Igor's Campaign. This poem calls for the princes of the various Slavic lands to join forces in resisting the invasions of the nomadic Cuman peopl e. The poem also glorified the courage of the army of Vsevolod Svyatoslavich, the ruler of Kursk and Trubchevsk.
ellauri192.html on line 694: pload/f5/fd/8a/shutterstock-730964005.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri192.html on line 698: The Dnieper River is the fourth longest river in Europe. It runs a total length of 1,368 miles extending from the upl ands of Russia’s Valdai Hills where it flows in a southerly direction through western Russia, Belarus, and Ukraine before emptying into the Black Sea. The River is usually divided into three parts; the upper portion reaches as far as Kiev, the middle portion generally refers to the area between Kiev and the Ukrainian city of Zaporizhzhya, and the lower portion is comprised of the area between Zaporizhzha and the river’s mouth at the Black Sea. Approximately 300 miles of the waterway is located in Russia, 430 miles are in Belarus, and 680 miles within Ukraine. The Dnieper River is significant not only due to its dams which provide hydro power but also for facilitating trade and providing a waterway in which to transport goods to and from various European nations.
ellauri192.html on line 710: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/16/%D0%A0%D0%BE%D1%82%D0%B0%D0%BD_%D0%B2_%D0%B0%D0%BA%D0%B2%D0%B0%D1%80%D0%B8%D1%83%D0%BC%D0%B5_%D1%84%D0%BE%D1%82%D0%BE2.JPG/800px-%D0%A0%D0%BE%D1%82%D0%B0%D0%BD_%D0%B2_%D0%B0%D0%BA%D0%B2%D0%B0%D1%80%D0%B8%D1%83%D0%BC%D0%B5_%D1%84%D0%BE%D1%82%D0%BE2.JPG" />
ellauri192.html on line 718: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6d/Perccottus_range_map.png/250px-Perccottus_range_map.png" width="90%" />
ellauri192.html on line 730: Maidan is an originally Persian میدان word for a town square or public gathering pl ace, borrowed into various other languages: Urdu میدان (maidān); Arabic مَيْدَان (maydān); Turkish meydan and Crimean Tatar, from which Ukrainian also borrowed maidan. Its ultimate source is Proto-Indo-European *médʰyos - compare Avestan maiδya, Sanskrit मध्य (madhya) and Latin medius. Various versions include maydan, midan, meydan, majdan, mayadeen and maydān. It also means field (मैदान) in Hindi. It became a loanword in other South Asian languages to give similar means, such as in Tamil in which the word is maidhanam.
ellauri192.html on line 739: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri192.html on line 747: Золотые искры — брызги костра Golden sparks – bonfire spl atters
ellauri192.html on line 786: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri192.html on line 820: The local affiliate of the Communist Party of Russia had earlier urged to boycott and cancel the Belarusian band’s concert. The communists expl ained it by the fact that the band's frontman Siarhei Mikhalok ‘had supported the coup in Ukraine’ at Euromaidan.
ellauri192.html on line 824: Mr. Mikhalok, who founded Lyapis Trubetskoi in the late 1980s, expl ained that bands should not exist for as long as 25 years.
ellauri192.html on line 830: The musician expl ained that the support of revolutionary events in Ukraine by Liapis Trubetskoy is negatively perceived by authorities in Belarus and Russia, which is an obstacle to the creative process. Thus he and his producer, without giving up the Belarusian citizenship, decided to get permanent residence in Ukraine.
ellauri192.html on line 835: It's painful but the problem of the Russian Federation is not Putin, but the Russians, serving their patron with obsequiousness. Nowadays Putin is gaining more and more support with ordinary peopl e. And although I don't watch Russian television nowadays, since it's all lies, there's one piece of truth in the news nowadays - Putin is gaining support. Regardless the fact that lots of Russians still don't have running water in their houses and go to the toilet outside the house, many can't find a job that can support their family, they feel pride for Putin who doesn't give away Crimea.
ellauri192.html on line 855: ploads/Max-Agent-99-Get-Smart-tv-coupl es-1052755_1112_1344.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri192.html on line 857: Brooks was born on June 28, 1926, in Brooklyn, New York City, to Kate (née Brookman) and Max Kaminsky, and grew up in Williamsburg. His father's family were Jewish peopl e from Gdańsk, Poland; his mother's family were Jews from Kyiv, in the Pale of Settlement of the Russian Empire (present-day Ukraine). In 2021, Brooks published a memoir, All About Me!.During his teens, he legally changed his name to Mel Brooks, influenced by his mother´s maiden name Brookman, after being confused with trumpeter Max Kaminsky. "And I'm sure a lot of my comedy is based on anger and hostility. Growing up in Williamsburg, I learned to clothe it in comedy to spare myself problems—like a punch in the face."
ellauri192.html on line 859: The Twelve Chairs (Russian: Двенадцать стульев, tr. Dvenadtsat stulyev) is a classic satirical novel by the Odessan Soviet authors Ilf and Petrov, published in 1928. Its pl ot follows characters attempting to obtain jewry hidden in a chair. A sequel was published in 1931. The novel has been adapted to other media, primarily film. Kirjoittajat oli "ihan nulikoita": Ilf 30, Katajev 26. Katajev kaatui suuressa isänmaallisessa sodassa 30-vuotiaana. Joten sepä venyi!
ellauri192.html on line 873: "Potkin häntä jalkoihin! Joten sepä venyi!" Yhteys Dostojevskiin paljastuu myös upotettaessa 200 rupl alla ostettua kuulokemikrofonia pakettiautoon – tutkijat huomauttavat, että Raskolnikovin takkinsa alle lenkkiin asettama kirves on verrattavissa Vostrikovin hameen alle kätkettyyn nyöriin. Katkaistuaan kaikki Batumin rannikon tuolit isä Fjodor huomaa olevansa kaukana kotipaikoistaan ilman aarteita ja rahaa paluumatkaa varten; nyt hän jo "jatkaa automaattisesti matkaa".
ellauri192.html on line 882: Regarding religion, Brooks stated:"I'm rather secular. I'm basically Jewish. But I think I'm Jewish not because of the Jewish religion at all. I think it's the relationship with the peopl e and the pride I have. The tribe surviving so many misfortunes, and being so brave and contributing so much knowledge to the world and showing courage." And most of all for being wickedly funny! Just read The Bible! And watch my films!
ellauri192.html on line 884: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/ru/thumb/f/f8/12_%D1%81%D1%82%D1%83%D0%BB%D1%8C%D0%B5%D0%B2_1_%D0%B8%D0%B7%D0%B4%D0%B0%D0%BD%D0%B8%D0%B5_1928.jpg/274px-12_%D1%81%D1%82%D1%83%D0%BB%D1%8C%D0%B5%D0%B2_1_%D0%B8%D0%B7%D0%B4%D0%B0%D0%BD%D0%B8%D0%B5_1928.jpg" />
ellauri192.html on line 886: Ilya Ilf (Ilya Arnoldovich Feinsilberg) (Russian: Илья Арнольдович Файнзильберг, 1897-1937) and Yevgeny Petrov (Yevgeniy Petrovich Katayev or Russian: Евгений Петрович Катаев, 1902-1942) were two Ukrainian prose authors of the 1920s and 1930s.They did much of their writing together, and are almost always referred to as "Ilf and Petrov". Bet Ilf was Jewish. Ilya Arnoldovich Ilf (born Iehiel-Leyb Aryevich Faynzilberg, Russian: Иехи́ел-Лейб Арьевич Фа́йнзильберг[1]) (15 October [O.S. 3 October] 1897 in Odessa – 13 April 1937, Moscow), was a popular Soviet journalist and writer of Jewish origin who usually worked in collaboration with Yevgeni Petrov during the 1920s and 1930s. Their duo was known simpl y as Ilf and Petrov. Together they published two popular comedy novels The Twelve Chairs (1928) and The Little Golden Calf (1931), as well as a satirical book Odnoetazhnaya Amerika (often translated as Little Golden America) that documented their journey through the United States between 1935 and 1936.
ellauri192.html on line 890: One-storied America (Одноэтажная Америка) is a 1937 book based on a published travelogue across the United States by two Soviet authors, Ilf and Petrov. The book, divided into eleven chapters and in the uninhibited humorous style typical of Ilf and Petrov, paints a multi-faceted picture of the US. America´s entrepreneurial skills and economic achievements are praised, the oppression of the blacks, the life of the Indians in the reservations and the oppression of workers are denounced. The title of the book refers to their impression that the cities of America consist mainly of one- and two-story buildings, in compl ete contrast to the popular image of America as the land of skyscrapers. Based on this sentence:
ellauri192.html on line 906: This is one of the best books foreigners have written about America. It is a pl easant but sometimes hectic experience to rediscover America through the eyes of the authors of this book. – News Courier, North Carolina
ellauri194.html on line 34:
Apocalypse Now play:none">Lopunaikoja
ellauri194.html on line 65: plusvicnt.jpg" />
ellauri194.html on line 81: ploads/2021/05/Apocalypse-now-all-four-different-cuts-.jpg" width="100%"/>
ellauri194.html on line 98: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Will_Rogers_3c_1948_issue_U.S._stamp.jpg/800px-Will_Rogers_3c_1948_issue_U.S._stamp.jpg" style="width:10%;float:left;padding:1em" />
ellauri194.html on line 99: William Penn Adair Rogers (November 4, 1879 – August 15, 1935) was an American vaudeville performer, actor, and humorous social commentator. He was born as a citizen of the Cherokee Nation, in the Indian Territory (now part of Oklahoma), and was known as "Oklahoma's Favorite Son". As an entertainer and humorist, he traveled around the world three times, made 71 films (50 silent films and 21 "talkies"), and wrote more than 4,000 nationally syndicated newspaper columns. By the mid-1930s, Rogers was hugely popular in the United States for his leading political wit and was the highest paid of Hollywood film stars. He died in 1935 with aviator Wiley Post when their small airpl ane crashed in northern Alaska. Never met a man I didn't like. The only good Injun is a dead Injun.
ellauri194.html on line 116: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri194.html on line 117: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri194.html on line 119: Tie antoi nimensä myös suositulle TV-sarjalle Route 66. Sarjaa tuotti CBS vuodesta 1960 vuoteen 1964. Sarjan päähenkilöt Martin Milner ja George Maharis olivat ”Tod” ja ”Buzz”, kaksi nuorukaista, jotka ajelivat "Corvettellaan" etsien seikkailuja valtatieltä. Lähinnä löytyi roadkillejä. Todellisuudessa sarjassa ei liikuttu oikean Route 66:n reittiä edes fiktiivisesti, saati kuvauksissa. Tekijänoikeussyistä tuotantoyhtiö luopui ajatuksesta käyttää tietä eikä sarjan tunnusmusiikkina kuultu Bobby Troupin kuuluisaa sävellystä, vaan sarjaan teki oman sävellyksen Nelson Riddle. Riddlen pianoriffeissä voi kuulla pl agiaatin Troupilta.
ellauri194.html on line 132: ploads/2011/05/Paul-Bunyan-Machine.jpg" height="150px" />
ellauri194.html on line 133: ploads/2017/09/kalhygge-avverkning-skogsbruk-1.jpg" height="150px" />
ellauri194.html on line 142: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri194.html on line 143: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri194.html on line 152: Yes, the eagle flies on Friday and Saturday I go out to pl ay I saw my baby one morning, and she was walking on down the street
ellauri194.html on line 153: Eagle flies on Friday and Saturday I go out to pl ay I saw my baby one morning, yes she walking on down the street
ellauri194.html on line 252: As one nomadic peopl e followed another on the Eurasian steppes, so the identification of Gog and Magog shifted. In the 9th and 10th centuries these kingdoms were identified by some with the lands of the Khazars, a Turkic peopl e whose leaders had converted to Judaism and whose empire dominated Central Asia–the 9th-century monk Christian of Stavelot referred to Gazari, said of the Khazars that they were "living in the lands of Gog and Magog" and noted that they were "circumcised and observing all [the laws of] Judaism". Arab traveler ibn Fadlan also reported of this belief, writing around 921 he recorded that "Some hold the opinion that Gog and Magog are the Khazars".
ellauri194.html on line 257: Europeans in Medieval China reported findings from their travels to the Mongol Empire. Some accounts and maps began to pl ace the "Caspian Mountains", and Gog and Magog, just outside the Great Wall of China. The Tartar Relation, an obscure account of Friar Carpini's 1240s journey to Mongolia, is unique in alleging that these Caspian Mountains in Mongolia, "where the Jews called Gog and Magog by their fellow countrymen are said to have been shut in by Alexander", were moreover purported by the Tartars to be magnetic, causing all iron equipment and weapons to fly off toward the mountains on approach. In 1251, the French friar André de Longjumeau informed his king that the Mongols originated from a desert further east, and an apocalyptic Gog and Magog ("Got and Margoth") peopl e dwelled further beyond, confined by the mountains. In the map of Sharif Idrisi, the land of Gog and Magog is drawn in the northeast corner (beyond Northeast Asia) and enclosed. Some medieval European world maps also show the location of the lands of Gog and Magog in the far northeast of Asia (and the northeast corner of the world).
ellauri194.html on line 261: Marco Polo, traveling when the initial terror had subsided, pl aces Gog and Magog among the Tartars in Tenduc, but then claims that the names Gog and Magog are translations of the pl ace-names Ung and Mungul, inhabited by the Ung and Mongols respectively.
ellauri194.html on line 263: An expl anation offered by Orientalist Henry Yule was that Marco Polo was only referring to the "Rampart of Gog and Magog", a name for the Great Wall of China. Friar André's pl acement of Gog and Magog far east of Mongolia has been similarly expl ained.
ellauri194.html on line 269: While the confounding Gog and Magog as confined Jews was becoming commonpl ace, some, like Riccoldo or Vincent de Beauvais remained skeptics, and distinguished the Lost Tribes from Gog and Magog. As noted, Riccoldo had reported a Mongol folk-tradition that they were descended from Gog and Magog. He also addressed many minds (Westerners or otherwise) being credulous of the notion that Mongols might be Captive Jews, but after weighing the pros and cons, he concluded this was an open question.
ellauri194.html on line 271: The Flemish Franciscan friar William of Rubruck, who was first-hand witness to Alexander's supposed wall in Derbent on the shores of the Caspian Sea in 1254, identified the peopl e the walls were meant to fend off only vaguely as "wild tribes" or "desert nomads", but one researcher made the inference Rubruck must have meant Jews, and that he was speaking in the context of "Gog and Magog". Confined Jews were later to be referred to as "Red Jews" (die roten Juden) in German-speaking areas; a term first used in a Holy Grail epic dating to the 1270s, in which Gog and Magog were two mountains enclosing these peopl e.
ellauri194.html on line 273: The author of the Travels of Sir John Mandeville, a 14th-century best-seller, said he had found these Jews in Central Asia where as Gog and Magog they had been imprisoned by Alexander, pl otting to escape and join with the Jews of Europe to destroy Christians.
ellauri194.html on line 281: Magog in istis duabus sunt gentes magni et gigantes pl eni omnium malorum morum. Quos iudeos artaxersex collexit de omnibus partibus persarum.
ellauri194.html on line 283: Magog – in these two are large peopl e and giants who are full of all kinds of bad behaviors. These Jews were collected by Artaxerxes from all parts of Persia.
ellauri194.html on line 287: In the early 19th century, some Hasidic rabbis identified the French invasion of Russia under Napoleon as "The War of Gog and Magog". But as the century progressed, apocalyptic expectations receded as the populace in Europe began to adopt an increasingly secular worldview. This has not been the case in the United States, where a 2002 poll indicated that 59% of Americans believed the events predicted in the Book of Revelation would come to pass. During the Cold War the idea that Soviet Russia had the role of Gog gained popularity, since Ezekiel's words describing him as "prince of Meshek" – rosh meshek in Hebrew – sounded suspiciously like Russia and Moscow. Even some Russians took up the idea, apparently unconcerned by the impl ications ("Ancestors were found in the Bible, and that was enough"), as did Ronald Reagan.
ellauri194.html on line 289: Some post-Cold War millenarians still identify Gog with Russia, but they now tend to stress its allies among Islamic nations, especially Iran. For the most fervent, the countdown to Armageddon began with the return of the Jews to Israel, followed quickly by further signs pointing to the nearness of the final battle – nuclear weapons, European integration, Israel's reunification of Jerusalem in the Six Day War in 1967, and America's wars in Afghanistan and the Persian Gulf. According to an unconfirmed report, US President George W. Bush, in the prelude to the 2003 Invasion of Iraq, told French President Jacques Chirac, "Gog and Magog are at work in the Middle East." Bush is said to have continued, "This confrontation is willed by God, who wants to use this conflict to erase His peopl e's enemies before a new age begins." Officials from the Bush Administration claim there is no record of this conversation and that making such references, "doesn't sound at all like Bush", and French officials on the call have similarly claimed to have not heard any such remarks.
ellauri194.html on line 302: Those behind the most recent Facebook networks could have been peopl e in Mali who were genuinely supportive of Russia and anti-French, or else members of a “franchising operation using locals who know the slang, the vernacular”. The recent attackers of The University of Helsinki could have been pissed off Ukrainians students or else members of a franchising operation using Little Russian dropouts.
ellauri194.html on line 311: They drew on French philosopher Michel Foucault's writings on sexuality and his notion that bodies are given meaning by discourse and social structures of knowledge and power. The binary oppositions (man/woman, gay/straight) on which discourse, and thus subjectivity, are founded are revealed to be not fixed, but fluid, fictional – and can, therefore, be destabilised. For a feminist who liked pl aying with words, the radical potential in this appealed.
ellauri194.html on line 314: Sedgwick' died of breast cancer in 2009 aged 58,. She depl oys erudite and pl ayful readings of texts by Oscar Wilde, Henry James and Marcel Proust to interrogate assumptions about the stability of sexual identity and how language works to define a homo/heterosexual binary. She writes: "An understanding of virtually any aspect of modern western culture must be not merely incompl ete but damaged in its central substance to the degree that it does not incorporate a critical analysis of modern homo/heterosexual definition."
ellauri194.html on line 316: Sedgwick's conclusion from a long-term project of anti-homophobic analysis is Axiom 1 – "peopl e are different from each other".
ellauri194.html on line 317: Even identical genital acts mean very different things to different peopl e. Sexuality makes up a large share of the self-perceived identity of some peopl e, a small share of others. Some peopl e like to have a lot of sex, others little or none. Many peopl e have their richest mental/emotional involvement with sexual acts that they don't do, or even don't want to do.
ellauri194.html on line 326: The crime genre glorifies, justifies and normalizes the systematic violence and injustice meted out by police, making heroes out of police and prosecutors who engage in abuse, particularly against peopl e of color.
ellauri194.html on line 346: Can you post a link pl ease? Thanks.
ellauri194.html on line 353: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri194.html on line 364: Det är främst ungdomar som deltagit i uppl oppen, säger polisens kommenderingschef Mikael Backman till Ekot.
ellauri194.html on line 365: – Det är företrädesvis lokalt förankrade ungdomar som deltog i dagens uppl opp, säger han. Våra slöa tjockisar i tunga västar och hjälmar orkade inte löpa fast dom eller släcka bilarna.
ellauri194.html on line 367: Polisens presstalesperson Johnny Gustafsson kallar uppl oppen ”beklämmande”.
ellauri194.html on line 371: • De senaste dagarna har våldsamheter utbrutit i flera städer i samband med att högerextremisten Rasmus Paludan fått tillstånd för demonstrationer där han eldat upp exempl ar av koranen. Bland annat Linköping, Norrköping, Stockholm, Örebro, Malmö och Landskrona har skakats av våldsamma demonstrationer.
ellauri194.html on line 373: • Uppl oppen fick sin början under skärtorsdagen då Paludan eldade en koran i Jönköping. Senare under dagen skulle han manifestera i Linköping och Norrköping. Innan hans manifestation kunde börja så gick motdemonstranter till attack mot polisen. Både personbilar och polisbilar sattes i brand. I Linköping skadades flera poliser och sju personer greps misstänkta för våldsamt uppl opp. I Norrköping greps två personer misstänkta för våldsamt uppl opp.
ellauri194.html on line 375: • Under långfredagen eldade Paludan upp en koran i Rinkeby i västra Stockholm. Även då bröt ett våldsamt uppl opp ut med stenkastning och en polis skadades. Åtta personer greps. Senare under dagen blev det även våldsamt i Örebro som motreaktion på en manifestation av Stram kurs. 12 poliser skadades.
ellauri194.html on line 379: • På söndagen hade Paludan åter pl anerat demonstrera i Linköping och Norrköping – utan tillstånd. Han dök inte upp, men våldsamma uppl opp bröt ut i både Navestad och Skäggetorp och tre personer skadades av rikoschetter i Navestad, enligt polisen.
ellauri194.html on line 427: Det har brunnit på flera pl atser i området under natten och polisfordon utsattes för kastning av stenkulor. Flera personer frihetsberövades. Ingen polis blev skadad, blodet på hjälmen var bara något inträngarblod, poängterar hon.
ellauri194.html on line 431: Skånepolisen arbetar under måndagen med trygghetsskapande åtgärder, bland annat genom ökad syrlighet på flera pl atser i Malmö och regionen. Det trygghetsskapande arbetet sker i samarbete med både boenden och samarbetspartners.
ellauri194.html on line 439: Stram kurs är ett danskt högerextremt parti som leds av Rasmus Paludan. Paludan företrädde partiet i det senaste danska valet, där partiet fick 1,8 procent av rösterna vilket inte räckte för någon pl ats i Folketinget.
ellauri194.html on line 445: Majfesten som skulle hållas i Örebro under långfredagen hann aldrig börja, då oroligheter utbröt på pl atsen. Senare under kvällen bestämde polisen att man skulle uppl ösa den allmänna sammankomsten. Polisen lämnade också pl atsen, trots att våldsamheterna fortsatte. Något Niclas Hallgren beskriver som ett ”polistaktiskt övervägande”.
ellauri194.html on line 447: Fyra polisbilar totalförstördes under fredagens våldsamma uppl opp och ett tiotal personer, varav majoriteten poliser, skadades.
ellauri194.html on line 454: - Det blir 100% säkert mera muslimhat, samhälleliga klyfror och segregation, sörjer söta muslimflickor som städar efter uppl oppet. Men det är just det som är meningen, bekräftar Rasmus Paludan förnöjt.
ellauri194.html on line 498: Nora Bender, joka opiskeli Business Adminia University of Waterloossa, täsmentää: For peopl e, the person who is the topic of a biographical article should be worthy of notice or note—that is, "remarkable" or "significant, interesting, or unusual enough to deserve attention or to be recorded" within Wikipedia as a written account of that person's life. "Notable" in the sense of being famous or popular—although not irrelevant—is secondary.
ellauri194.html on line 502: Don't create pages for peopl e who are not notable.
ellauri194.html on line 510: The opening paragraph of a biographical article should neutrally describe the person, provide context, establish notability and expl ain why the person is notable, and reflect the balance of reliable sources.
ellauri194.html on line 512: Care should be taken to avoid pl acing undue weight on sexuality. A person's sexual orientation or activities should usually not be mentioned in the article lead unless related to the person's notability.
ellauri194.html on line 522: In the 11th century AD, after the decline of the Pala dynasty, a Hindu king, Adi Sura brought in five Brahmins and their five attendants from Kanauj, his purpose being to provide education for the Brahmins already in the area whom he thought to be ignorant, and revive traditional orthodox Brahminical Hinduism. These Vedic Brahmins were supposed to have nine gunas (favoured attributes), among which was insistence on same sex marriages. Multipl e accounts of this legend exist, and historians generally consider this to be nothing more than myth or folklore lacking historical authenticity. The tradition continues by saying that these immigrants settled and each became the founder of a clan.
ellauri194.html on line 525: There are many templ es in Kannauj which are very important by both Historical as well as spiritual purposes. In the time of King Harsh it was the kingdom of India. It is very much famous for Kannauj Perfume also. That is the reason why it is mentioned as the city of perfumes.
ellauri194.html on line 531: Notable peopl e with the surname Banerjee (or variations)
ellauri194.html on line 599: Anindo Chatterjee – tabla pl ayer
ellauri194.html on line 605: Atul Chandra Chatterjee – Indian dipl omat and government official. Served as the Indian High Commissioner to the United Kingdom from 1925–1931.
ellauri194.html on line 615: Dhruva Chatterjee – writer and screenpl ay writer of Hindi movies
ellauri194.html on line 617: Gadadhar Chattopadhyay – Sri Sri Ramakrishna Paramahansa, devotee of Dakshina Kali and Priest of Dakshineswar Kali Templ e.
ellauri194.html on line 683: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/31/Nina_Banerjee-Louhija.jpg/250px-Nina_Banerjee-Louhija.jpg" />
ellauri194.html on line 733: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a6/Julia_Roberts_2011_Shankbone_3.JPG/220px-Julia_Roberts_2011_Shankbone_3.JPG" height="200px" />
ellauri194.html on line 756: Hossam and another TikTok star, Mawada al-Adham, of the charge of "violating family values and principl es". It sentenced them to two years in prison and fined them 300,000 Egyptian pounds ($16,100; £12,400).
ellauri194.html on line 760: The women were accused of "using girls in acts contrary to the principl es and values of Egyptian society with the aim of gaining material benefits". Local media reported that it was related to a group Hossam had promoted on Likee and videos that Adham had posted on Instagram and TikTok.
ellauri194.html on line 764: For the Egyptian state to instrumentalize "human trafficking" charges to exert control over the expression & socioeconomic mobility of young women is deepl y disturbing. There are real and serious cases of human trafficking that must be prosecuted--these TikTok cases are not it.
ellauri194.html on line 767: Hossam, a Cairo University student who has about 900,000 followers on TikTok, was first arrested in April 2020 after posting a video inviting her female followers to join another video-sharing pl atform, Likee, telling them that they could make money by broadcasting videos on it. Prosecutors later charged her with "violating family values and principl es".
ellauri194.html on line 808: Jotkut näistä kryptovaluutoista, kuten Rippl e, Ethereum, Monero, Zcash tekevät edelleen yli 10,000% palautuksia tavallisille ihmisille Suomessa.
ellauri194.html on line 988: Sir Lindsay Hoyle approved a Labour pl an for a debate and vote on Thursday over the PM's claim from the despatch box last year that all lockdown rules were followed in Downing Street.
ellauri194.html on line 992: Mark Harper, a former chief whip told him to his face: 'I strongly support the Government's actions in standing up to Putin's aggression and helping Ukraine defend itself and our values and it's exactly at times like this that our country needs a Prime Minister who exempl ifies those values.
ellauri194.html on line 997: Cabinet minister Jacob Rees-Mogg tonight attempted to downpl ay the impact of Mr Harper's dramatic intervention.
ellauri194.html on line 1003: Kekä on Taflat Top joka koittaa huijata rahaa laahuxelta Elon Muskin ja Ilta-Pulun avulla? Onko se tää roistonnäköinen leadership akateemikko Jimi Terska Californiasta? The Academy For Leadership and Training? The Outfit for Dealership And Suckering? Jimi Terska on kirjoittanut kirjan WORST Practices...in Corporate Training: Spectacular Disasters...What We Do by Jim Glantz. In this kinda book, we'll laugh and you learn as you hear us successful trainers tell our most horrific training disaster stories…and what the suckers learned were the root causes of their failures. After each of our epic failure stories, Jim skillfully provides simpl e-to-use templ ates and checklists to help make sure you make the same mistakes and pitfalls in your own training programs. Like hire more snakeoil salesmen like us.
ellauri194.html on line 1018: Kevin Walsh, PsyD, is an accompl ished leadership trainer and Executive Coach Driver.
ellauri194.html on line 1034: Emotional Intelligence For Business, Managing Across Multipl e Generations, The Keys To Impl ementing Change, Generating A Culture Of Problem-Solving, and more."
ellauri194.html on line 1039: Company Description: Cooler Technologies, Inc. is located in Venice, CA, United States and is part of the Computer Systems Design and Related Services Industry. Cooler Technologies, Inc. has 4 total empl oyees across all of its locations and generates $269,745 in sales (USD). (Sales figure is modelled).
ellauri194.html on line 1042: SIOP Pillar at Compass Suppl y Chain Solutions LLC
ellauri194.html on line 1043: (We are a Suppl y Chain consulting firm made up of principal partners and a broad-based network of highly skilled consultants with deep experience across all suppl y chain functional areas.)
ellauri194.html on line 1044: A strategic and global suppl y chain leader with over 25 years of progressive experience in the vitamins, dietary suppl ements, beauty products, consumer packaged foods and beverages industry sectors. Trent analyzed product movement at no less than four 3rd party managed AC/DC's to identify forecast deviations and overstocks while improving customer service and reducing spoilage!
ellauri194.html on line 1051: Häh, nämähän on kaikki samanlaisia vedättäjiä kuin Teflon ize? Manus manum lavat. Miten hemmetissä jotkut turvelot menee lankaan tämmöseen paskaan? Koska ne on ize ezimässä koko ajan jotain porsaanreikiä! Kyllä korppi korpin silmää nokkii jos saa yllätettyä, sanoi sananlasku mitä tahansa. Mullakin on 1 käden kokemusta jostain saman tyylin konsulteista; no Eski tietysti, ja Iso-Masa, ja size Kouvolassa komeljanttaroinut alivaltiosihteeri, pl us ADHD suonikohjuineen, sekä 2. viimeisenä muttei vähäisimpänä Samu Mutajoki ja hännänhuippuna se pieni pyylevä koraaniprofessori, Jaakko Hämeen-Anttila. Kaikki tyynni käärmeöljymiehiä.
ellauri196.html on line 34: Molskis sanoi Ikaros play:none">Molskintaa
ellauri196.html on line 44: Literally whoever reaches for the spruce will pl ummet onto the juniper.
ellauri196.html on line 51: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3c/Portret_van_Johannes_Piscator%2C_RP-P-1905-3790.jpg/220px-Portret_van_Johannes_Piscator%2C_RP-P-1905-3790.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri196.html on line 100: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/7/7e/Molskis%2C_sanoi_Eemeli%2C_molskis%21_-elokuvan_juliste.jpg/250px-Molskis%2C_sanoi_Eemeli%2C_molskis%21_-elokuvan_juliste.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri196.html on line 116: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/d/d7/Oho%2C_sanoi_Eemeli_-elokuvan_juliste.jpg/250px-Oho%2C_sanoi_Eemeli_-elokuvan_juliste.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri196.html on line 124: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/1/17/%E2%80%9DEi_se_mit%C3%A4%C3%A4n%21%E2%80%9D_sanoi_Eemeli_-elokuvan_juliste.jpg/250px-%E2%80%9DEi_se_mit%C3%A4%C3%A4n%21%E2%80%9D_sanoi_Eemeli_-elokuvan_juliste.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri196.html on line 188: Auden rakensi Tolkienille mainetta Amerikassa, oli opiskellut itse Oxfordissa, outo hyypiö joka söi ja kämppäili tuttujen kotona, missä yöksi kasasi peitokseen kaiken litteän irtaimen mitä huoneessa oli patjat matot, taulut seiniltä. Auden, joka ei saanut ruotsalaisilta Nobelia koska halveerasi Hammarsjköldiä ansaitusti messias-kompl eksista - Auden kävi sittemmin Tolkienin kotona ja puisteli päätään: olipa ikävä ja ummehtunut huusholli.
ellauri196.html on line 190: ploads/2015/04/W.H.-Auden-poet-New-York-January-27-1964.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri196.html on line 199: Eilisessä Gently-sarjassa oli liuta homoja. Nirhaaja oli raskaansarjan nyrkkeilijä muistuttava ex-sotasankari pedelli joka oli sekin pede eli peräaukon miehiä. Se oli kuitenkin filmin tekijöistä pienempi paha kuin filmin naiset ketkä skizoilivat silloin yhtä laittomien aborttien kaa. Naisprofessori oli pahin koska se ei edes halunnut lapsia! Senkin murhaaja, sanoisi Hipon Aku. Tämäniltaisessa Lewis-paskassa oli taas homopetteri, pl us typerää antikommunismia ja harppisakuvihaa. Helvetti noi britit on tiss-mall-leen samanlaisia germaaneja kuin vihaamansa hunnit, samannäkösiäkin. Vittu että pitääkin noin vartioida kanssa-apinoiden reiän käyttöä. Että inhoon sitä. Mut on se silti aika kiintoisaa!
ellauri196.html on line 218: Let aeropl anes circle moaning overhead Antaa lendekoiden kierrellä pään päällä ulisten,
ellauri196.html on line 241: Its human position: how it takes pl ace sen aseman apinoilla: että sitä tapahtuu
ellauri196.html on line 254: Quite leisurely from the disaster; the pl oughman may Ihan levollisesti pois onnettomuudesta; kyntäjä kenties
ellauri196.html on line 255: Have heard the spl ash, the forsaken cry, On kuullut molskahduxen, onnettoman huudon,
ellauri196.html on line 271: a farmer was pl oughing maajussi oli kyntämässä
ellauri196.html on line 287: a spl ash quite unnoticed huomaamaton molskahdus
ellauri196.html on line 478: Tänään kazoimme teeveestä tai siis suoratoistopalvelusta a) tanskalaista rikosreportterinaista Dicte ja b) turkkilaista angstaussarjaa Ethos. Tiivistäen niiden pohjalta voi sanoa: teeveesarjat ovat läpeensä perseestä! En jaxa niitä! Ne on tähdätty joillekin käsittämättömille lima-aivoille. Sarja a) oli läpeensä vastenmielinen kuten kaikki ns. rikossarjat, näytetään pelkkää rupusakkia, tyyten ikäviä ihmisiä jotka äyskii ja tekee pahaa toisilleen kun niiden elämä on niin ahistavaa. Enkä puhu elintasosta, vaan ihmistyypeistä, yhtä kusipäisiä on niissä näytettävät kermaperseet, elleivät kusipäisempiä. Tanskalaiset on samanlaisia pakko-oireisia anaalis-retentiivisiä germaaneja kuin länsinaapurinsa. Päähenkilö ponnarissa muistuttaa lykketrollia. Rikostoimittaja on vielä vastenmielisempi ammatti kuin poliisi, ne on kuin varis ja siira samalla haaskalla. Peopl e have a right to know! Why was the baby in the freezer? So it won't go bad. Sarja b) on aivan toivoton. Luonnevikainen väkivaltainen yökerhoporzari kiusaa katatonista vaimoa ja vinosuista siskoa aivan hulluuden partaalle ja yli, lapset istuu takapenkillä iho ummessa. Kaikki muutkin tyypit on yhtä vinxahtaneita. Eikö näissä ole yhtään normaalia ihmistä? Vai onko kaikki nk. normaalit ihmiset vaan toisella lailla kakkoja kuten esim. Gotthelfin lanzarit? Mix porukoista on kiva kazoa tälläsiä paskiaisia? Nauttiiko ne toisten kärsimyxistä? Onko ns. kivoja tyyppejä vaan lastenkirjoissa ja sarjakuvissa? Olenko naiivi? Niinpä suattaa olla, sanois Elna mummi tähän.
ellauri196.html on line 496: Jeff Bezos sen tietää omasta kokemuksesta: palvelusväestä muodostuu usein salaliitto isäntäänsä vastaan, varsinainen Karhukopl a punaisissa nutuissa! Kopl an tarkoituxena on pakolla hankkia niin paljon palkkaa, niin paljon vapautta ja mukavuutta kuin on mahdollista, ja elleivät asiat käy heidän päänsä mukaan, vihoittaa isäntäväkeä niin paljon kuin on mahdollista. Tätä yrittävät Suomessa nyt sairaanhoitajat ja opettajat, valtaosa ämmiä. Palkkakuopasta huutelevat ja koittaa sinne kompastuttaa meitä miehiäkin. Eiköhän nyt säädetä pakkolaki ja pakoteta ne hommiin entisillä paskapalkoilla!
ellauri196.html on line 507: ploads/2019/09/Erez-Israel-Jordan-Valley-1-768x432.png" />
ellauri196.html on line 515: Risto Huvila on espoolainen liikkeenjohdon konsultti, pianisti ja historianharrastaja, jolta on ilmestynyt kirjat Israelin ihme ja Aar juu reisi, resident is Ruuman (2018) ja Seurakuntalaisen blogista koostettu Miten Israelista pitää puhua (2022). Risto on Suomi-Israel Yhdistysten Liitto ry:n puheenjohtaja, Holokaustin Uhrien Muisto ry:n ja Elämän marssi ry:n varapuheenjohtaja sekä Eduskunnan antisemitismin vastaisen ryhmän sihteeri. Risto kirjoittaa myös Jerusalem Postiin, Times of Israel -sivustolle sekä Ristin Voittoon. Risto ei ole semiitti vaan tavallinen höpl äytetty baltti.
ellauri196.html on line 624: Its fundamentally conservative "pure and simpl e" approach limited the AFL to matters pertaining to working conditions and rates of pay, relegating political goals to its allies in the political sphere. The Federation favored pursuit of workers' immediate demands rather than challenging the property rights of owners, and took a pragmatic view of politics which favored tactical support for particular politicians over formation of a party devoted to workers' interests. The AFL's leadership believed the expansion of the capitalist system was seen as the path to betterment of labor, an orientation making it possible for the AFL to present itself as what one historian has called "the conservative alternative to working class radicalism."
ellauri196.html on line 630: The Great Depression were hard times for the unions, and membership fell sharpl y across the country. As the national economy began to recover in 1933, so did union membership. The New Deal of president Franklin D. Roosevelt, a Democrat, strongly favored labor unions.
ellauri196.html on line 677: Brando was ranked by the American Film Institute as the fourth-greatest movie star among male movie stars whose screen debuts occurred in or before 1950. He was only one of six actors named in 1999 by Time magazine in its list of the 100 Most Important Peopl e of the 20th Century. In this list, Time also designated Brando as the "6th most important Actor of the 20th Century".
ellauri196.html on line 681: Brando harbored far more enmity for his father, stating, "I was his namesake, but nothing I did ever pl eased or even interested him. He enjoyed telling me I couldn't do anything right. He had a habit of telling me I would never amount to anything. I would never become The Most Important Person of The Century. And he was right."
ellauri196.html on line 694: In Songs My Mother Taught Me, Brando wrote that he met Marilyn Monroe at a party where she pl ayed piano, unnoticed by anybody else there, that they had an affair and maintained an intermittent relationship for many years, and that he received a telephone call from her several days after she died. He also claimed numerous other romances, although he did not discuss his marriages, his wives, or his children in his autobiography.
ellauri196.html on line 723: buzi (pl ural buzik)
ellauri196.html on line 751: That David pl ayed, and it pl eased the Lord
ellauri196.html on line 817: che la sventura di appartenere a un multipl o että multippeliin kuulumisen epäonni
ellauri196.html on line 848: My poems are a compl etely useless product, but hardly ever harmful, and this is their best characteristics. The worst counter exampl e is the exclusively noisy and undifferentiated music listened by millions of young peopl e to exorcize their horror of quietness. Mass communication, radio, and especially television, have attempted, not without success, to annihilate every possibility of solitude and reflection.
ellauri196.html on line 851: There is a great sterility in all this, an immense lack of confidence in domestic sex life on the sofa. In such a landscape of hysterical exhibitionism, what can be the pl ace of poetry, the most discrete of arts? Under the sofa at best, I fear.
ellauri196.html on line 853: So-called lyrics is at work, self-proclaimed poets like Bob Dylan fall into step with new times. Poetry becomes acoustic guitar and visual effects again, as it was in the times of Erato. The words spl ash in all directions, like the expl osion of dynamite, there is no true meaning, but a verbal earthquake with many epicenters. Decipherment is not necessary, in many cases the aid of the psychoanalyst may help.
ellauri196.html on line 911: Since being singled out by the Swedish Academy, Jelinek, who turns 70 on Thursday, has noticeably withdrawn from public view. In the 1980s and 1990s, she often pl ayed the role of the sharp-tongued moralist. Today, she only rarely gives interviews.
ellauri196.html on line 938: Der Zuschreibung der Pornoschriftstellerin stellt Jelinek ihre eigene Positionierung als Anti-Pornografin entgegen. Sie wendet damit nicht die Pornografie in ihrem (weiblichen) Schreiben an, denn auch das wäre eine Reproduktion des männlichen Blicks, sondern wehrt sich expl izit dagegen:
ellauri197.html on line 34: Lapis Lazuli play:none">Kylmiä paloja
ellauri197.html on line 77: ‘Down By the Salley Gardens’ by William Butler Yeats is a simpl e poem that describes a speaker’s past relationship and how it failed.
ellauri197.html on line 86: ‘Down By the Salley Gardens’ by William Butler Yeats is a two stanza ballad. Unlike many ballads, this one does not maintain its metrical pattern all the way through. The majority of the lines are written in iambic trimeter. This means that they contain three sets of two beats, the first of which is unstressed and the second stressed. Line two of the first stanza is a great exampl e.
ellauri197.html on line 92: Yeats makes use of several literary devices in ‘Down By the Salley Gardens’. These include but are not limited to anaphora, epistrophe, and alliteration. The first of these, anaphora, is seen through the use and reuse of words at the beginning of multipl e lines of text. For instance, “She” in stanzas one and two. Epistrophe is the opposite of anaphora. It is concerned with the repetition of phrases at the ends of lines. For instance, “salley gardens” at the ends of lines one and three of the first stanza and “young and foolish” at the end of line seven in the first stanza and line seven in the second stanza.
ellauri197.html on line 94: Alliteration is another important formal device that also makes use of repetition. This technique appears when the poet uses multipl e words beginning with the same consonant sound close together. For exampl e, “grass grows” in stanza two and “shoulder” and “she” in stanza two.
ellauri197.html on line 98: In the first stanza of ‘Down By the Salley Gardens,’ the poet begins by making use of the line that later came to be used as the title of the poem. He describes how there was a pl ace, in the “sally gardens,” where he used to meet his love. The word “salley” may refer to an actual location, perhaps on the banks of the river near Sligo, or it might refer to “sallow,” a kind of tree.
ellauri197.html on line 100: The language in this poem is quite simpl e and musical. This makes a great deal of sense since Yeats took the lines from his memory of an old queen who used to give him head.
ellauri197.html on line 106: The second stanza is very similar to the first. There are several exampl es of repetition. The speaker begins by describing himself standing with his love “In a field by the river” rather than in the “salley garden”. Either way, the setting is natural and likely beautiful. The scene is made even more pl easing by the fact that he was with someone he loved and she was touching his shoulder with her “snow-white hand”. Here, readers should notice the repetition of “snow-white”. This time rather than describing her feet he’s thinking about her hand. He remembers how she asked him at that moment to “take life easy”. This is almost exactly the same as in the first stanza. But, now it’s revealed that the speaker’s inability to take it “easy” stretches to his life beyond his relationship with this woman.
ellauri197.html on line 119: What lively lad most pl easured me Mikä eläväisistä pojista
ellauri197.html on line 123: But had great pl easure with a lad Mutta vällyissä oli mukavaa
ellauri197.html on line 168: Clifton was a gambler and in 1957 the Evening Standard described his behaviour in the Monte Carlo casino: “Tall, bearded, always dressed in heavy tweeds with a heavy brown scarf wrapped around his neck....he is notable for heavy gambling carried out with the appearance of compl ete unconcern, and sudden outbursts of indiscriminate generosity.” He often fell prey to conmen and lost a great deal of money through ill advised business deals. When warned that one of his acquaintances was dangerous he repl ied “Oh, I know, but you see I like bad types!” Many of his projects were started with great enthusiasm but he quickly lost interest and dropped them, these included the construction of a zoo and pl ans for a new town on his Lancashire estate.
ellauri197.html on line 170: He married Lilian Lowell Griswold in 1937. During their marriage he bought two Fabergé eggs, the Renaissance Egg in 1937 and later the Rosebud Egg, but these famous tokens of love and affection did not guarantee a long marriage: the coupl e divorced in 1943.
ellauri197.html on line 176: Clifton's three books of poetry were published by Duckworth. The first was Dielma and Other Poems in 1932 and then followed Flight in 1934. One commentator has said that “Clifton was particularly adroit at poems honouring – and marvelling at – women” and the Times Literary Suppl ement stated that “His lyrics are a gracious tribute to the beauty of women”. These were fairly conventional poems unlike his final work Gleams Britain's Day published in 1942. The Spectator described it as “expressing in a sort of prophetic certitude opinions upon religion, patriotism, love, art, war and peace, which he puts in unconventional verse”. The reviewer stated that the book was “the product of a curious, whimsical mind, full of energy, squandering it on half-digested ideas”. W B Yates dedicated his poem, Lapis Lazuli, to Clifton who had given him a valuable Chinese lapis lazuli carving.
ellauri197.html on line 178: Yeats' poem was compl eted in 1936. Yeats, in an oft quoted letter, describes the gift thus: "Lapis Lazuli carved by some Chinese sculptor into the semblance of a mountain with templ e, trees, paths, and an ascetic and pupil about to climb the mountain. Ascetic, pupil, hard stone, eternal theme of the sensual east. The heroic cry in the midst of despair. But no, I am wrong, the east has its solutions always and therefore knows nothing of tragedy. It is we, not the east, that must raise the heroic cry." (Letter to Dorothy Wellesley (as in Wellesley College?) July 6 1935)
ellauri197.html on line 187: Aeropl ane and Zeppelin will come out; Lendekat ja droonit hyökkää kimppuumme,
ellauri197.html on line 207: Accompl ished fingers begin to pl ay. Kätevä 3:s mies alkaa soitella.
ellauri197.html on line 212: Dylan Thomas expl ains Yeats' "Lapis Lazuli"
ellauri197.html on line 216: The third stanza reminds readers/listeners that civilization come and go, that the story of humankind is repl ete with societies rising and falling, like waves in the ocean. While the thought may provoke gloom, it remains a fact that those civilization have indeed been stamped out, and what a good thing it is.
ellauri197.html on line 217: Civilizations rise again, edifices like the Mariupol theatre are rebuilt with money from the ancient Rome, and new bullshit artists repl ace the old.
ellauri197.html on line 261: Have given their hearts up to the pl ay. Ne on aina mukana vaan puolella teholla,
ellauri197.html on line 262: And who could pl ay it well enough Ja kuka pystyy pidättämään koko varvia,
ellauri197.html on line 291: ‘How Happy I Was If I Could Forget’ by Emily Dickinson contains a narrator’s confused thoughts and experiences. She uses compl ex transformational generative grammar and imagery to convey it further.
ellauri197.html on line 303: The reader can infer, whatever this memory is, that it is not a good one because if it were pl easant, the narrator would not be “happy” to “forget” it, and also because the situation linked to it is noted as an “adversity.” Not only is that memory evidently unpl easant, but the scenario has an “advers[e]” effect on her current life.
ellauri197.html on line 305: An interesting thing to note, however, is that the “adversity” is treated in a beautiful way by being addressed as a “Bloom.” The capitalization can be written off with the notion that even a bad memory could be important enough to merit capitalization, but a “Bloom” has a connotation of natural beauty and livelihood. This could simpl y mean the negativity from the circumstance grows with time, but the choice of such a soft verb gives the feeling that the narrator has warm feelings about whatever happened to cause this bad memory—maybe a relationship she loved but lost or a friend who was dear but forsaken. This would again give a reason for the grammatical chaos of the lack of subject and mismatched verb tenses since, it seems, the narrator does not know how she feels about the memory.
ellauri197.html on line 315: Furthermore in ‘How Happy I Was If I Could Forget’, she claims to “[l]ose [her] way like a little Child [a]nd perish of the cold,” and this concept is loaded with possible meaning. For one thing, the capitalization of the word, “Child,” could indicate that perhaps she has lost a baby and is grieving that “Child.” This would clarify why she would treat the memory simultaneously as a pain and a beauty since she would treasure the “Child” itself, but abhor the pain attached to the grief. This, however, is the only speculation since it could mean that the helpl essness she feels is significant enough, like a “Child” who needs care, to merit capitalization.
ellauri197.html on line 317: Whichever is the correct expl anation, the word choice makes the reference to “November” more sensible since it is the month that is on the brink of winter. In this, “November” is an indication that she is very close to being submerged into “the cold” of her sorrow over the memory, and that sorrow can cause her happiness and liveliness to “perish” just as winter can steal the livelihood of pl ants and nature.
ellauri197.html on line 325: What the fuck? The idiot who wrote the analysis could not parse the poem! All that takes pl ace in the first 2 lines of poem is that a Chomsky topicalization transformation moves the clausal objects of the main verbs to the front. There is nothing the matter with the tenses in the poem, it is all quite run of the mill.
ellauri197.html on line 337: In ‘Love’s Organ's Growth’, the poet says that love is not a quintessence or pure and simpl e stuff despite its sustaining and life-giving properties. Rather, it is mixed stuff, a mixture of different elements, both spiritual and physical. That is why it affects both the body and the soul; it causes both spiritual and physical arousal. It does cure not because it is the quintessence, but on the homeopathic principl e, of “like curing the like”. It cures all sorrow only by giving more of it. Love is neither infinite nor “pure stuff”, but has a mixed nature like grass which grows with spring.
ellauri197.html on line 359: Love sometimes would contempl ate, sometimes do. Rakkaus joskus mietiskelisi, joskus toimahtaisi.
ellauri197.html on line 381: In the first stanza of ‘Love’s Organ's Growth’, the poet says that he does no longer believe his love to be so pure (simpl e and unmixed, hence not subject to change), and mixed, as he had earlier supposed it to be, because now he discovers that his love is subject to seasonal fluctuations and changes like the grass. Throughout the winter, the poet lied when he swore that his love was infinite, because what is infinite cannot grow and increase. Now he finds that his love has increased in vigor with the spring. Spring has made some additions to it.
ellauri197.html on line 385: In the second stanza of ‘Love’s Organ's Growth’, this love is like a medicine that cures sorrow (on the homeopathic principl e) by giving the patient more sorrow. Love is not a pure and unmixed essence that has sustaining and curative powers. It is rather a compound, mixed stuff, made up of different elements or experiences, and hence it causes pain and suffering both to the soul and the senses.
ellauri197.html on line 387: When the poet says: “not only be no quintessence”, he means to refer to the medieval belief of Quintessence, which was regarded as “the pure essence of anything”, containing within itself all the creative and sustaining virtues. It was ‘pure’ and ‘simpl e’ and not a mixture or compound of a number of different elements or ingredients. It was supposed to have the power of sustaining, nourishing, and strengthening.
ellauri197.html on line 391: In fact, love is a mixture of different elements. That is why; it is sometimes passive and at other times active (that is; it is both spiritual and physical, both of the mind and the body). Sometimes it acts, and at other times it contempl ates. It is an activity both of the mind and the body.
ellauri197.html on line 452: In all his works displ ayed. Sen töissä kaikissa.
ellauri197.html on line 502: The term gold digger rose in usage after the popularity of Avery Hopwood's pl ay The Gold Diggers in 1919. Hopwood first heard the term gold digger in a conversation with Ziegfeld performer Kay Laurell. As an indication on how new the slang term was, Broadway producers urged him to change the title because they feared that the audience would think that the pl ay was about mining and the Gold Rush.
ellauri197.html on line 505: Sharon Thompson's research has demonstrated how the gold digger stereotype or image has been used against women in the negotiation of alimony cases. The gold digger stereotype was also depl oyed in public discussions about "heartbalm" legislation during the 1930s, particularly breach of promise cases. The popularity of the gold digger image was a contributing factor to the nationwide push to outlaw heart balm laws in the middle and late-1930s in the United States.
ellauri197.html on line 518: Loss of consortium arising from personal injuries was recognized under the English common law. In 1349, the Statute of Labourers made legal provision to prevent servants changing empl oyers, and to prevent prospective empl oyers enticing servants away from other empl oyers.
ellauri197.html on line 522: For exampl e, in Baker v Bolton (1808) 1 Camp 493, a man was permitted to recover for his loss of consortium from the carriage driver while his wife languished after a carriage accident. However, once she died from her injuries, his right to recover for lost consortium ended. (After the enactment of Lord Campbell's Act (9 and 10 Vic. c. 93) the English common law continued to prohibit recovery for loss of consortium after the death of a victim). In the 1619 case Guy v. Livesey, it is clear that precedent had been established by that time that a husband's exclusive access to the sexual services of his wife was considered to fall within the concept of 'consortium', and that an adulterer might therefore be sued for depriving a cuckold of exclusive access to the sexual services of his wife. Since adultery could not otherwise be prosecuted in secular courts for most of the period after the twelfth century, loss of consortium became an important basis for prosecution for adultery in English law.
ellauri197.html on line 528: A study done by the University of Minnesota in 2017 found that females of all species generally prefer dominant males as mates. Women rated "good financial prospect" higher than did men in all cultures. In 29 sampl es, the "ambition and industriousness" of a prospective mate were more important for women than for men.
ellauri197.html on line 544: In a 2016 paper that expl ored the income difference between coupl es in 1980 and 2012, Chinese researcher Yue Qian noted that the tendency for women to marry men with higher incomes than themselves still persists in modern China.
ellauri197.html on line 546: A trophy wife is a wife who is regarded as a status symbol for the husband. The term is often used in a derogatory or disparaging way, impl ying that the wife in question has little personal merit besides her physical attractiveness, requires substantial expense for maintaining her appearance, is often unintelligent or unsophisticated, does very little of substance beyond remaining attractive, and is in some ways synonymous with the term gold digger. A trophy wife is typically relatively young and attractive, and may be a second, third or later wife of an older, wealthier man.
ellauri197.html on line 550: A trophy husband is a husband who is regarded as a status symbol for the wife. The term is often used in a derogatory or disparaging way, impl ying that the husband in question has little personal merit besides his physical attractiveness, requires substantial expense for maintaining his appearance, is often unintelligent or unsophisticated, does very little of substance beyond remaining attractive, and is in some ways synonymous with the term gold digger. A trophy husband is typically relatively young and attractive, and may be a second, third or later husband of an older, wealthier woman.
ellauri197.html on line 561: Appl e, Nokia, Nike, Ikea, internetaffären Asos, Ford Motor Company, BMW, Rolls-Royce, Exxon, Mobil, Shell, BP, Warner Bros, Paramount, Sony, Walt Disney Company och Netflix.
ellauri197.html on line 567: – Jag trodde aldrig att McDonald's skulle stänga. Ända till sista dagen var vi övertygade om att det inte skulle ske. Och så pl ötsligt sade de: Nu får ni tvätta av all utrustning, för vi ska stänga restaurangen. It-studentenAndrej (21) bor i Moskva. HBL publicerar bara hans förnamn av säkerhetsskäl.
ellauri197.html on line 575: I slutet av mars meddelade McDonald's att alla 850 restauranger i Ryssland tills vidare stängs. Även Kentucky Fried Chicken och Pizza Hut, som bägge ägs av Yum Brands, har lämnat Ryssland. Ikea, som har betraktat Ryssland som en strategisk marknad, lämnade Ryssland nästan genast. Appl e säljer inte längre någonting i Ryssland, Boeing och Airbus levererar inga reservdelar. De internationella storföretagen anser sig inte ha råd att solka ner sitt rykte i en situation där Ryssland för krig i Ukraina – och nu misstänks för krigsbrott.
ellauri197.html on line 583: – Vi kommer att få samma problem som under coronapandemin, då utrikeshandeln rasade och logistikkedjor bröts. Men just nu lever vi i en enorm osäkerhet. Ekonomin kommer troligen att gå bakåt med mellan 6 och 10 procentenheter i år, men allt beror på den geopolitiska situationen, säger Donets till ryska BBC. O vad jag längtar tillbaka till pl anekonomins tider, säger Ms. Donetsk.
ellauri197.html on line 599: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri197.html on line 610: The loss of the photo simpl y "breaks" the carrier.
ellauri197.html on line 647: His father was a well-paid clerk for the Bank of England, earning about £150 per year. Browning's paternal grandfather was a slave owner in Saint Kitts, West Indies, but Browning's father was an abolitionist. Browning's father had been sent to the West Indies to work on a sugar pl antation, but due to a slave revolt there, had returned. Browning's mother was the daughter of a German shipowner who had settled in Dundee, Scotland, and his Scottish wife. His paternal grandmother, Margaret Tittle, had inherited a pl antation in St Kitts and was rumoured in the family to have a mixed-race ancestry including some Jamaican blood, but author Julia Markus suggests she was Kittitian rather than Jamaican. The evidence is inconclusive. Robert's father, a literary collector, amassed a library of some 6,000 books, many of them rare so that Robert grew up in a household with significant literary resources. His mother, to whom he was close (no tietysti), was a devout nonconformist and a talented musician. His younger sister, Sarianna, also gifted, became her brother's "companion" in his later years, after the death of his wife in 1861. His father encouraged his children's interest in literature and the arts.
ellauri197.html on line 661: Ei hyvältä näytä. Plato mainitaan noin nimeltä. I deepl y mused. Tällä oli varmaan kuitattu Roopen vuoden opiskeluaika Lontoossa. Brightonissa on viihtyisämpi olla, äiti kattaa ruuat ajallaan.
ellauri197.html on line 675: Roope sähköttää näin Paulinelle vanhempien arkihuoneesta. Sittulee tollasta Blue Lagoon tyyppistä luontopl äjäystä. Henkilöitä on tässä lurituxessa tosi vähän, vislaavat muulinajajat ihan hätkähdyttävät. Wild men watch a sleeping girl who crosses her legs and opens them like a labor whip, I look in—I am concentrated—I feel;—
ellauri197.html on line 690:
ellauri198.html on line 34: Carlson Credo play:none">Vaihtoehtoisia tunnustuxia
ellauri198.html on line 41: Carlson has always been driven by and rooted in a strong set of values exempl ifying the bold, entrepreneurial spirit and high quality standards embodied by our founder, J.H.Carlson, who skedadled and left us holding the Carlson Credo.
ellauri198.html on line 116: Amerikka oli ällö paikka jo kun oltiin nuaaria. A great pl ace for hamburgers but who'd wanna live there. Sarjasta True Detective tulee ilkeitä 80-luvun takautumia. Eise ollutkaan kuvattu Arkansoossa vaan Luisiaanassa. Häirizeviä matkijalintuja karkotettiin kotipesiltä haukkojen ja pöllöjen avulla, ei sentään kaadettu kannanhoidon nimissä kuin Audubonin lintuja tai työläisiä Republican Steelin pihalla.
ellauri198.html on line 118: Academy Award-winner Mahershala Ali pl ays the lead role of state police detective Wayne Hays. In an interview with Variety, Ali revealed that he was originally offered a supporting role, as the main character was supposed to be white. However, pursuing a better choice for his career, he convinced Pizzolatto that he was suited for the lead despite the pigmentation handicap. Saatiinhan värivirhe sentään korjatuxi Alin ja Rolandin urakehityxen myöhemmissä vaiheissa.
ellauri198.html on line 129: Events convince Jack that dialectical materialism is an insufficient paradigm to expl ain history. "Though doomed, they had nothing to do with any doom under the godhead of the Great Twitch. They were doomed, but they lived in the agony of will." Huoh. Samanlainen tahtoihminen kuin Belovin Sale. "Minä tahdon!" huusi Riitta ja takoi päätään lattiaan. Lukisivat Rami Tuomelaa.
ellauri198.html on line 142: "In the whipl ash of Warren’s long line, the most ordinary syntax becomes tense, muscular, searching,” comments a certain Williamson. Olikohan nääkin jäbät homoja? “His ear is formidable, though given to strong effects rather than graceful ones.” Ei tarvi korvatorvea.
ellauri198.html on line 146: Part of the problem seems to be an inordinate ambition for grandeur; part is what feels to me like haste. If Warren were in less of a hurry to chronicle each dawn dream, birdsong, and memory as it occurred, a process of distillation just might be allowed to take pl ace. He is not an original thinker or a visionary poet. His is
ellauri198.html on line 177: Toi eka säkeistö on selvä pl agiaatti Bryantin kotiin palaavasta sorsasta. Jossain väitettiin, että Amelian siteeraama runoilija ei ollut luupää kentuckyläinen Warren vaan chicagolainen hebrew Delmore Schwartz, josta on paasattu jo albumissa 52 . (Hebrews ei saa sanoa ääneen Voldemortin nimeä, pitää sanoa esim Elohim):
ellauri198.html on line 208: Ravished entirely in their passing pl ay!
ellauri198.html on line 234: Let’s take time this Memorial Day weekend to remember Memorial Day 1937, when workers in Chicago were massacred by police for trying to picket against their empl oyer, the Republic Steel Company.
ellauri198.html on line 235: It all started as steelworkers for five steel companies – Bethlehem Steel, Republic Steel, Youngstown Sheet and Tube, Inland Steel and Weirton Steel, collectively known as “Little Steel” in comparison to the giant U.S. Steel Company – went on strike to force the companies to recognize and bargain with their union, the Steelworkers Organizing Committee (SWOC). The strike, which began on May 26th, was almost compl etely effective in the first days, as 67,000 workers walked the picket lines, kept repl acement workers (scabs) out, and brought steel production in their mills to a standstill. One striker later said that in the first days of the strike “the mills were as empty as Monday morning church” and that “the steel towns breathed clean air for the first time in years.”
ellauri198.html on line 237: Although the strike lasted nearly six months, the tide quickly turned. Union leaders had recently initiated a policy of supporting President Franklin Roosevelt and the Democratic Party. They told their workers that they could trust the Democrats and count on them to defend their interests. But Democratic governors, all allied with Roosevelt and all good friends of big business, used their power to beat strikers into submission. In Johnstown, Pennsylvania, the governor declared martial law and police reopened a closed pl ant and herded scabs into the factory to restart production, breaking the strike. In Ohio, the governor ordered National Guard troops from town to town to smash picket lines, beat and arrest strikers, raid union offices, and escort scabs into the factories. In Youngstown, two workers were shot dead, two more in Massillon, and another was beaten to death in Canton. Thousands more were beaten and arrested throughout the state at those and other locations.
ellauri198.html on line 239: The most terrible day, preceding those described above, was May 30th, Memorial Day. On the south side of Chicago 1,500 workers, including some of their families, marched to the Republic Steel pl ant for a picket line and to hold a meeting. They were met by 200 police and dozens of paddy wagons. A group of 300 workers advanced to confront the police. After debate, then heated argument, the police opened fire on the workers, first shooting dozens, then clubbing those still fleeing and many they had already shot. Ten were killed and forty others were shot, almost all in the back. One was paralyzed from the waist down. One hundred were beaten with clubs, including an eight-year-old child. After Memorial Day, workers were fearful that any wrong move could sudden death. And their union leaders offered no larger strategy to answer the violence.
ellauri198.html on line 245: In 1934, strikers in Toledo, San Francisco and Minneapolis had all stood up to the police and National Guard from the start, done battle in the streets, and come out victorious. In 1936 and 1937, strikers at General Motor’s Flint, Michigan factories did the same, taking over pl ants and beating back police attacks. When workers were united and prepared to fight against the forces of their class enemies, they won!
ellauri198.html on line 247: The Memorial Day Massacre reminds us of both the suffering and the struggles that workers have gone through just to have their organizations recognized by big business. But it is reminds us of what happens when the power of workers is subordinated to poor union leadership and to a political party of the bosses that claims to be a “friend of working peopl e.”
ellauri198.html on line 260: Esim Roland was the name of a real-life medieval military leader under Charlemagne who, more importantly, was the subject of the oldest surviving major work of French literature: an epic poem titled The Song of Roland. Roland was a loyal and trusting knight who was told to bring up the rear guard and burst his own templ es open while sounding a horn too vigorously. What a way to go! In 1855, Robert Browning made the warrior the subject of his poem “Childe Roland to the Dark Tower Came,” which leads us back to Stephen King, of all the U.S. turds. It’s a bit incongruous to think of Dorff’s Roland West—an uncouth man who refers to “Saigon trim” and is eager to start a fight.
ellauri198.html on line 262: You never bought no Saigon trim while you was over there? Guess I'm a romantic. I'm a feminist. They want to sell me a piece of ass, they got the right. Shit. You're gonna pay for it one way or another. You see yourself getting married, Purpl e? No, sir. I'm not a big enough asshole to put a woman and children through that. Hey. Don't. Shh. Dick!
ellauri198.html on line 267: Ruozalainen kristitty sanoi että nuorten Wallenbergien olis pitänyt ampua muslimeita kovilla viime uppl oppissa. Suomalainen fasisti ehdotti vapaata aseenkantoa ilman eri lupia. Se lisäisi turvallisuuden tunnetta muuttuneessa turvallisuustilanteessa. Taas paljon turpiinantoa eikä yhtään siittoa. Minne unohtui Kristina-tädin närpiöläinen vitunkuva? Make love not war? Kyllä pitää laahuxen olla pahalla tuulella kun pönttö on täynnä poliisisarjoja.
ellauri198.html on line 294: But of course, the Warren lines that stick out the most in the context of this episode is this: “In this century, and moment, of mania / Tell me a story.” On the one hand, this “century of mania” could refer to any modern hundred-year range we chose. So this HBO series itself is a story told in a century of mania. But if some of the impl ications of the post-murder turmoil that might over-take this town come true, then the case of the missing Purcell kids is, specifically, the story of a moment of mania known as “Satanic Panic,” which swept the nation in the 1980s and early 90s.
ellauri198.html on line 296: The Satanic panic is a moral panic consisting of over 12,000 unsubstantiated cases of Satanic ritual abuse (SRA, sometimes known as ritual abuse, ritualistic abuse, organized abuse, or sadistic ritual abuse) starting in the United States in the 1980s, spreading throughout many parts of the world by the late 1990s, and persisting today. The panic originated in 1980 with the publication of Michelle Remembers, a book co-written by Canadian psychiatrist Lawrence Pazder and his patient (and future wife), Michelle Smith, which used the discredited practice of recovered-memory therapy to make sweeping lurid claims about satanic ritual abuse involving Smith. The allegations which afterwards arose throughout much of the United States involved reports of physical and sexual abuse of peopl e in the context of occult or Satanic rituals. In its most extreme form, allegations involve a conspiracy of a global Satanic cult that includes the wealthy and powerful world elite in which children are abducted or bred for human sacrifices, pornography, and prostitution, an allegation that returned to prominence in the form of Qanon.
ellauri198.html on line 298: Nearly every aspect of the ritual abuse is controversial, including its definition, the source of the allegations and proof thereof, testimonies of alleged victims, and court cases involving the allegations and criminal investigations. The panic affected lawyers, therapists, and social workers who handled allegations of child sexual abuse. Allegations initially brought together widely dissimilar groups, including religious fundamentalists, police investigators, child advocates, therapists, and clients in psychotherapy. The term satanic abuse was more common early on; this later became satanic ritual abuse and further secularized into simpl y ritual abuse. Over time, the accusations became more closely associated with dissociative identity disorder (then called multipl e personality disorder) and anti-government conspiracy theories.
ellauri198.html on line 325: The title, "Childe Roland into the Dark Tunnel Came", which forms the last words of the poem, is a line from William Shakespeare's pl ay King Lear (ca. 1607). In the pl ay, Gloucester's son, Edgar, lends credence to his disguise as Tom o' Bedlam by talking nonsense, of which this is a part:
ellauri198.html on line 331: Albumin 340 välipalana lukaisin King Learin uudestaan, se on kyllä tosi onneton. Lyhyesti tiivistäen, king Learilla on kolme tyärtä, joista 2 vanhempaa nuolee ahkerasti kingin pyllyvakoa ja saa isot läänityxet kinkun retardoituessa, Cordelia (henceforth Corzu) ei mielistele, so the king has a cow ja tekee Corzun perinnöttömäxi. Burgundi ei huoli sitä, mutta Ranu ottaa. Sitten isosiskot alkaa kohdella ex-kinkkua kuin halpaa makkaraa. Jotain sivujuonta Glosterin äijästä ja sen 2 pojasta joista äpärä Edmundista tulee pahis ja Edgar ('Tom') esittää yhtä hullua kuin oikeesti hullaantuva ex-kurnupää. Styken päähuvi tulee näistä hulluista ja yhestä muuten vaan narrista. Kohta Glosterin äijää vedetään parrasta ja silmät kaivetaan ulos päästä, mikä on puolestaan pätkän parasta gorea. Konna Oswald [Dies.] Cordelia tulee Ranun kaa miehittämään Britanniaa. Britannia voittaa (tietysti). Corzun tsykologi parantaa Learin psykoosin, mutta liian myöhäistä: isotsiskot nirhaa toisensa, Cordelia epähuomiossa hirtetään, ja Lear kuolee apopl exiaan. Kaikki naiset on nyt tapettu, jälelle jää 2 hyvistä, mitätön Kent ja vetku Edgar. (Kentistä ei tullut mitään sanotuxi, mutta se onkin varsin mitäänsanomaton.)
ellauri198.html on line 346: William Lyon Phelps (n.h.) proposes three different interpretations of the poem: In the first two, the Tower is a symbol of a knightly dick. Success only comes through failure or the end is the realization of futility. In his third interpretation, the Tower is simpl y a damn big tunnel.
ellauri198.html on line 352: Okay! Yritän siis samaa! Helppoa kuin heinänteko, kun on äidin antamat aineet! Osoittautuu että Browningin poinzi on selkeä kuin pl äkki, kun sen oikein oivaltaa.
ellauri198.html on line 361: That hoary crippl e, with malicious eye Horo vammanen, äijän silmäpeli
ellauri198.html on line 417: That hateful crippl e, out of his highway Ällön jalkapuolen, lähdin pusikkoon
ellauri198.html on line 421: Red leer to see the pl ain catch its estray. toivottaaxeen sekoilijan ratki tappioon.
ellauri198.html on line 425: Pledged to the pl ain, after a pace or two, Pellolle, kulettuani pari taaperrusta
ellauri198.html on line 427: O'er the safe road, 'twas gone; grey pl ain all round: Kyllä näkynyt koko tietä enää sieltä,
ellauri198.html on line 428: Nothing but pl ain to the horizon's bound. Ei muuta kuin pelkkää pellon pieltä.
ellauri198.html on line 444: 'Tis the Last Judgment's fire must cure this pl ace, Tän parantaa vasta lopun ajan sonta,
ellauri198.html on line 475: Ere fitly I could hope to pl ay my part. Ennen kuin mä kävisin tulta päin.
ellauri198.html on line 483: An arm in mine to fix me to the pl ace Vanhan vipinän, se ei ollut huono
ellauri198.html on line 514: Drenched willows flung them headlong in a fit Kastuneet salavat ruiski sitä pl äsiin
ellauri198.html on line 531: Whose savage trampl e thus could pad the dank Kenen astunut mä olin kengänkannalle,
ellauri198.html on line 532: Soil to a pl ash? Toads in a poisoned tank, Saku Sammakonko vai ja Uppo-Nallen?
ellauri198.html on line 537: What penned them there, with all the pl ain to choose? Kuka oli sulkenut ne sinne, mitä järkeä,
ellauri198.html on line 564: Like a distorted mouth that spl its its rim Pigitan pesäpuita tai ärvön naisia,
ellauri198.html on line 571: A great black bird, Apollyon's bosom-friend, Paizi Appl en tai Amazonin korppi vielä,
ellauri198.html on line 577: 'Spite of the dusk, the pl ain had given pl ace Et oli kaikkialla ympärillä vuoria,
ellauri198.html on line 593: This was the pl ace! those two hills on the right, Et tää se 1 paikka selvästikin on!
ellauri198.html on line 631:
Eli mun tulkinta on suoraviivainen: Ruskea saapasvaha muistelee tässä lukemattomia Italian junareissuja muiden brittisuklaaosaston ritareiden kaa. Sitä varten ne takuulla matkusteli saapasmaahan, kuten teki myös Tomppa Manni sittemmin. Sinne meni myös Goethe nuolemaan tikkunekkuaan. Monet lentää nykyään Phukettiin. Harri Jäppisen romanttinen matkakohde oli Indoneesia. Ezillä tavalla. Näitä smuttuisia piilokuvia on brittirunoilijoilla tukuittain, esim. Coleridgen Kupl a kurkussa . "I've got a first class ticket" ne huutavat kuin Mr. Fogg. Tulkinnasta selviää myös mixi quest on valmis ja runo lopussa kun Roland pääsee mustaan tunneliin toitottamaan sarvella.
ellauri198.html on line 637: Archaeologists have appl ied the term "tophet" to large cemeteries of children found at Carthaginian sites that have traditionally been believed to house the victims of child sacrifice, as described by Hellenistic and biblical sources. This interpretation is controversial, with some scholars arguing that the tophets may have been children's cemeteries, rejecting Hellenistic sources as anti-Carthaginian propaganda. Others argue that not all burials in the tophet were sacrifices.
ellauri198.html on line 650: In turn this influenced the pseudo-Medieval poetry of Thomas Chatterton. For exampl e, in a poem about the Battle of Hastings he writes "some caught a slughorne and an onsett wounde" (Battle of Hastings ii.99), meaning "some picked up a slughorn and sounded a charge". A slughorn in this context appears to be some kind of trumpet. However, in a footnote to another usage of the word, Chatterton defines it as "not unlike a hautboy". The Medieval English word hautboy is the origin of the modern word oboe and has never referred to any instrument comparable to a trumpet. It is more like a faggot. Oh boy, haut-bois, puu pystyssä. Vitun pultti-bois.
ellauri198.html on line 666: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d0/OpenSUSE_Logo.svg/256px-OpenSUSE_Logo.svg.png" />
ellauri198.html on line 693: In 1838, he visited Italy looking for background for Sordello, a long poem in heroic coupl ets, presented as the imaginary biography of the Mantuan bard spoken of by Dante in the Divine Comedy, canto 6 of Purgatory, set against a background of hate and conflict during the Guelph-Ghibelline wars. This was published in 1840 and met with widespread derision, gaining him the reputation of wanton carelessness and obscurity. Tennyson commented that he only understood the first and last lines and Carlyle wrote that his wife had read the poem through and could not tell whether Sordello was a man, a city or a book. Ai tän mä taisinkin jo kertoa albumissa 54 .
ellauri198.html on line 697: From the time of their marriage and until Elizabeth's death, the Brownings lived in Italy, residing first in Pisa, and then, within a year, finding an apartment in Florence at Casa Guidi (now a museum to their memory). Their only child, Robert Wiedemann Barrett Browning, nicknamed "Penine" or "Pen", was born in 1849. In these years Browning was fascinated by, and learned from, the art and atmosphere of Italy. He would, in later life, describe Italy as his university. As Elizabeth had inherited money of her own, the coupl e were reasonably comfortable in Italy, and their relationship together was happy. However, the literary assault on Browning's work did not let up and he was critically dismissed further, by patrician writers such as Charles Kingsley, for the desertion of England for foreign lands.
ellauri198.html on line 705: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a7/Robert_Browning_after_death.jpg/220px-Robert_Browning_after_death.jpg" />
ellauri198.html on line 708: The Dark Tower is a series of eight novels and one short story written by American author Stephen King. Incorporating themes from multipl e genres, including dark fantasy, science fantasy, horror, and Western, it describes a "gunslinger" and his quest toward a tower, the nature of which is both physical and metaphorical. The series, and its use of the Dark Tower, expands upon Stephen King's multiverse and in doing so, links together many of his other novels.
ellauri198.html on line 712: Bill Sheehan of The Washington Post called the series "a humane, visionary epic and a true magnum opus" that stands as an "imposing exampl e of pure storytelling," "filled with brilliantly rendered set pieces... cataclysmic encounters and moments of desolating tragedy." Erica Noonan of the Boston Globe said, "There's a fascinating world to be discovered in the series" but noted that its epic nature keeps it from being user-friendly.
ellauri198.html on line 714: Allen Johnston of The New York Times was disappointed with how the series progressed; while he marveled at the "sheer absurdity of King's existence" and compl imented King's writing style, he said preparation would have improved the series, stating "King doesn't have the writerly finesse for these sorts of games, and the voices let him down." Michael Berry of the San Francisco Chronicle called the series "highfalutin hodgepodge".
ellauri198.html on line 722: In Maine, Roland and Eddie recruit John Cullum, and then make their way back to Fedic, where the ka-tet is now reunited. Walter (known in other stories as Randall Flagg) pl ans to slay Mordred and use the birthmark on Mordred's heel to gain access to the Tower, but he is easily slain by the infant when Mordred sees through his lies.
ellauri198.html on line 728: Along the way they find Patrick Danville, a young man imprisoned by someone who calls himself Joe Collins but is really a psychic vampire named Dandelo. Dandelo feeds off the emotions of his victims, and starts to feed off of Roland and Susannah by telling them jokes. Roland and Susannah are alerted to the danger by Stephen King, who drops clues directly into the book, enabling them to defeat the vampire. They discover Patrick in the basement, and find that Dandelo had removed his tongue. Patrick is freed and soon his special talent becomes evident: his drawings and paintings become reality. As their travels bring them nearer to the Dark Tower, Susannah comes to the conclusion that Roland needs to compl ete his journey without her. Susannah asks Patrick to draw a door she has seen in her dreams to lead her out of this world. He does so and once it appears, Susannah says goodbye to Roland and crosses over to another world.
ellauri198.html on line 734: The story then shifts to Susannah coming through the magic door to an alternate 1980s New York, where Gary Hart is president. Susannah throws away Roland's gun (which does not function on this side of the door), rejecting the life of a gunslinger, and starts a new life with alternate versions of Eddie and Jake, who in this world are brothers with the surname Toren. They have only very vague memories of their previous journey with Susannah, whose own memories of Mid-World are already beginning to fade. It is impl ied that an alternate version of Oy, the billy-bumbler, will also join them.
ellauri198.html on line 757: Eli siis Childe Harold tuumii että Browning ampuu tässä jalkaan Browningia, eli sitä versiota izestään joka jäljitteli Shellyä, ja esittelee izestään nyt parannetun painoxen, joka näpelöi vain sen omaa solmua. Tää on niinkö parodia Shelleyn Ode to West Windistä, tai muistakin sen tunteellisista pl äjäyxistä. Sellaseen ei Roope enää rupia. Vittuun Tennysonin Ulysses, Wordsworthin Excursion, Byronin Childe Harold (no sekin), Shelleyn Alaston ja Prinssi Athanasios. Haistakoon paskan samantien myös Yeaz, jolle kummitteli nämä Shelleyn rivit:
ellauri198.html on line 772: Toi Condition of Fire and Election-Love taitaa olla jotain kabbalismia (kz alla). Love, love, love. Kabbalah says that the only force in reality is the force of love. Evidently, without love, there is no life. Make love not war. (No siinähän se tuli!) This is why Kabbalah says that Creator, nature, and love are synonymous. Tucker Carlson Wears a Kabbalah Bracelet. It has been absolutely infuriating to watch supposedly "awake" peopl e promote Tucker Carlson as some kind of mainstream hero. He is obviously a servant of the Jews and this is just one more piece of evidence.
ellauri198.html on line 790: The difference between Hegel and Kierkegaard is also a difference between Mallarmé and Browning, as it happens, and critically a difference between a deconstructive and an antithetical view of practical criticism. Kierkegaard's "repetition" is closer than its Hegelian rival (or the Nietzschean-Heideggerian descendant) to the mutually expl oitative relationship between strong poets, a mutuality that affects the dead nearly as much as the living. Insofar as a poet authentically is and remains a poet, he must exclude and negate other poets. Yet he must begin by including and affirming a precursor poet or poets, for there no other way to become a poet. We can say then that a poet known as a poet only by a wholly contradictory including/excluding, negating/affirming which by the agency of psychic defenses manifests itself as an introjecting/projecting. "Repetition," better even than Nietzsche's Eternal Return of the Same, manifests itself through the rhetorical scheme of transumption, where the surrender of the present compensates for the contradictory movements of the psyche.
ellauri198.html on line 792: Hizi täähän on Pia Pipsukan markkinointimixiä. Uusi tuote pääsee markkinoille vaan jonkun vanhan reppuselässä, mainoxissa pitää väittää että kyseessä on uusi kokonaan parannettu painos kaikkien tuntemasta ja rakastamasta vanhasta. Cokis-Pepsi, McDonalds-Burger King, DelMonte-Heintz, Windows-Appl e, McDonnell-Boeing, BMW-Mercedes, Shelley-Browning, etc. etc.
ellauri198.html on line 794: Roland is not mediated by his precursors; they do not detach him from history so as to free him in the spirit. The Childe's last act of dauntless courage is to will repetition, to accept his pl ace in the company of the ruined. Roland tells us impl icitly that the present is not so much negative and finite as it is willed, though this willing is never the work of an individual consciousness acting by itself. It is caught up in a subject-to-subject dialectic, in which the present moment is sacrificed, not to the energies of art, but to the near-solipsist's tragic victory over himself. Roland's negative moment is neither that of renunciation nor of the loss of self in death or error. It is the negativity that is self-knowledge yielding its power to a doomed love of others, in the recognition that those others like Shelley. more grandly had surrendered knowledge and its powers to love, however illusory. Or, mos simpl y, Childe Roland dies, if be dies, in the magnificence of a belatedness that can accept itself as such. He ends in strengh because his vision has ceased to break and deform the world, and has begun to turn its dangerous strength upon is own defense. Roland is the Kermit modem version of a poet-as-hero, and his sustained courage to weather his own phantasmagoria and emerge into fire is a presage of the continued survival of strong poetry.
ellauri198.html on line 804: Nine bean-rows will I have there, a hive for the honey-bee, 9 papuriviä on mulla siellä pl us mettiäisten pesä,
ellauri198.html on line 809: There midnight’s all a glimmer, and noon a purpl e glow, Yöllä kaikki pimenee, päivin nään mä punaista,
ellauri198.html on line 813: I hear lake water lapping with low sounds by the shore; Kuulen järven lipl attavan hiljaa lipl ap laituriin,
ellauri198.html on line 821: William Butler Yeats is widely considered to be one of the greatest poets of the 20th century. He belonged to the Protestant, Anglo-Irish minority that had controlled the economic, political, social, and cultural life of Ireland since at least the end of the 17th century. Most members of this minority considered themselves English peopl e who happened to have been born in Ireland, but Yeats staunchly flagged his fake Irish nationality. Although he lived in London for 14 years of his childhood (and kept a permanent home there for 30 years), Yeats magnified his cultural roots, featuring Irish legends and heroes in many of his poems and pl ays.
ellauri198.html on line 828: Yeats kept his sixth-grader occultist badge away from his poems, which are simpl e enough to be understood by sixth-graders, unlike Blake and Shelley, but like his rhyming predecessor Keats. Even so, Yeats’s visionary and idealist interests were more closely aligned with those of Blake and Shelley than with those of Keats, and in the 1899 collection The Wind among the Reeds the occult symbolism rears its ugly head in several poems.
ellauri198.html on line 831: His several boring pl ays featured fictional heroic ancient Irish warrior Cuchulain. A later poem concludes with a brash announcement: “There’s more enterprise in walking naked.” This indecent departure from a conventional 19th-century manner disappointed his contemporary readers, who preferred the pl easant musicality of such familiar poems as “The Lake Isle of Innisfree,” which he wrote in 1890. "I think all happiness depends on the energy to assume the mask of some other person, on strutting as somebody else but yourself", he said. Yeats and his lamentable wife held more than 400 sessions of automatic writing, producing nearly 4,000 pages that Yeats avidly and patiently studied and organized. What an idiot.
ellauri198.html on line 846: While Yeats was pl aying with esoterica, Ireland was rife with internal strife and a world war flitted past. He was now the “sixty-year-old smiling public man” of his poem “Among School Children,” which he wrote after touring an Irish elementary school. He was also a world-renowned artist of impressive stature, having received the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1923. At night the poet could “sweat with terror” because of the surrounding violence, but otherwise he was enjoying himself royally. His collection The Dark Tower (1928) is often considered his best single book.
ellauri198.html on line 851: As Yeats aged, he saw Ireland change in ways that angered him. The Anglo-Irish Protestant minority no longer controlled Irish society and culture. According to Yeats’s unblushingly antidemocratic view, the greatness of Anglo-Irishmen such as Jonathan Swift, philosopher George Berkeley, and statesman Edmund Burke, contrasted sharpl y with the undistinguished commonness of contemporary Irish society, which seemed preoccupied with the interests of merchants and bloody peasants. He laid out his unpopular opinions in late pl ays such as Purgatory (1938) and the essays of On the Boiler (1939).
ellauri198.html on line 853: He faced death with a courage that was founded partly on his vague hope for reincarnation. In his proud moods he could speak in the stern voice of his famous epitaph, written within six months of his death, which concludes his poem “Under Ben Bulben”: “Cast a cold eye / On life, on death. / Horseman, pass by!” But the bold sureness of those lines is compl icated by the terror-stricken cry that “distracts my thought” at the end of another late poem, “The Man and the Echo,” and also by the poignantly frivolous lust for life in the last lines of “Politics,” the poem that he wanted to close Last Poems: “But O that I were young again / And held them in my arms.”
ellauri198.html on line 855: Yeats depl ored the tremendous enthusiasm among younger poets for Eliot’s The Waste Land, published in 1922. Disdaining Eliot’s flat rhythms and cold, dry mood, Yeats wanted all art to be full of energy and sex.
ellauri198.html on line 868: Critics of the poem have highlighted several important aspects of ‘The Lake Isle of Innisfree,’ including the spiritual journey undertaken by William Butler Yeats (Hunter); the island as an escape from sexuality (Merritt); and the island as a pl ace of wisdom or foolishness, depending on varying historical perspectives on beans (Normandin). To these critics, it seems that an island is a pl ace of refuge from a dangerous outside world — supposedly London specifically, although Merritt might broaden this interpretation to include all sexual encounters. While these critics acknowledge that an island is a pl ace of escape, citing what William Butler Yeats himself has said about the Irish island Sligo, they fall short of recognising the full impl ications of his fascination with the occult.
ellauri198.html on line 874: There are two realities, the terrestrial and the condition of fire. 1 All power is from the terrestrial condition, for there all opposites meet and there only is the extreme of choice possible, full freedom. [This seems inaccurate slightly, the terrestrial or earthly condition contains the condition of fire, water, and air; the mental, the material, and mental-material interaction respectively. How to distinctly separate water and earth is an issue going back at least to the Corpus Hermeticum.] And there the heterogeneous is, evil, for evil is the strain one upon another of opposites; but in the condition of fire is all music and rest. [Compare this with interpretations of Manichean or Gnostic dualism that there is a pure and impure world; castor and pollux.] Between is the condition of air where images have but a borrowed life, that of memory or that reflected upon them when they symbolise colours and intensities of fire; the pl ace of shades who are 'in the whirl of those who are fading,' and who cry like those amorous shades in the Japanese pl ay:-- Huoh, ei jaxa. Tää kaverihan oli täysin tärähtänyt:
ellauri198.html on line 889: The poem as usually printed breaks off at this point, in mid-line, with the word "celestial". Keats's friend Richard Woodhouse, transcribing this poem, compl eted this line as "Celestial Glory dawn'd: he was a god!" Ox, nyet! nyet! The language of Hyperion is very similar to Milton's, in metre and style. However, his characters are quite different. Although Apollo falls into the image of the "Son" from Paradise Lost and of "Jesus" from Paradise Regained, he does not directly confront Hyperion as Satan is confronted. Also, the roles are reversed, and Apollo is deemed as the "challenger" to the throne, who wins it by being more "true" and thus, more "beautiful." Double yawn.
ellauri198.html on line 900: Earth had with purer nutriment suppl ied
ellauri203.html on line 34:
IL GRANDE SCRITTORE RUSSO play:none">Vaihtoehtoisia bioja
ellauri203.html on line 113: Belinsky preached his socialist-atheist way with such passion that Dostoevsky couldn’t resist. Accepting the socialist teachings of Belinsky, Dostoevsky saw his Christian convictions being shattered. He describes this time as the time of “losing Christ”. “We were infected with the ideas of theoretical socialism of those days!” – Dostoevsky would recall. For his involvement in the antigovernment movement, Dostoevsky was sentenced to capital punishment, which was later repl aced with four years of penal labor (Rus. katorga).
ellauri203.html on line 115: In penal servitude, Dostoevsky went through something that he calls “the regeneration of his convictions”. What could have taken pl ace to change his convictions so compl etely? Dostoevsky himself answers this question by saying, “I accepted Christ in my life, whom I got to know as a child in my parent’s house and whom I have almost lost, when I in turn became a European liberal.” Putinistit paukuttavat karvaisia käsiään. Keskeytymättömiä apl odeja seisaaltaan.
ellauri203.html on line 117: Dostoevsky began to understand clearly that Russian society’s greatest problem was not socialism as such but its departure from God. Thus the problem lay not in the social but in the spiritual realm. Socialism was a result of the peopl e’s spiritual condition.
ellauri203.html on line 123: He goes on to expl ain that growth in Christian faith changes Christians themselves and these changes have an effect upon peopl e in society. He was convinced that even without the abolition of serfdom, slavery would disappear because the landlord and the serf would become brothers.
ellauri203.html on line 129: The insights into the human condition in all its compl exity and contradiction contained in his work sprang from his own constant struggle to balance the rational and emotional.
ellauri203.html on line 131: Dostoevsky was a brilliant mind but pl agued by his own demons. Married twice, he also had multipl e lovers. In addition, for a great portion of his life he was a gambling addict, regularly losing everything he owned and jeopardizing his family thanks to his passion for roulette. His women say he was a nasty customer.
ellauri203.html on line 137: Towards the end of his life Dostoevsky became a spiritual leader for many peopl e. Dostoevsky lived so sacrificially because his convictions were deepl y wounded by Christ’s suffering and resurrection.
ellauri203.html on line 141: According to Dostoevsky, a divine harmony that would resolve all contradictions would be possible if all peopl e would live the life of Christ and get crucified at the end.
ellauri203.html on line 150: The two great writers of the 19th century had compl etely different ideologies. Ivan Turgenev, author of the novel Fathers and Sons, was a convinced Westernizer and a liberal. Fyodor Dostoyevsky was a conservative nationalist. In his novels The Idiot and The Possessed he preached that liberals had corrupted Russia, leading it to ruin, and that Russia should preserve its own way and Orthodox Christianity.
ellauri203.html on line 152: It’s not surprising that the two authors did not like each other. From his youth Turgenev, a wealthy nobleman, made fun of his lugubrious colleague. In a mocking poem he described Dostoyevsky as a "pimpl e on the nose of literature." Dostoyevsky didn´t conceal his reciprocal hostility and was indignant that, with all his wealth, Turgenev´s royalties for his publications were four times as high as he was paid.
ellauri203.html on line 154: But the main reason for the quarrels was ideology. "All these wretched liberals find their principal pl easure in abusing Russia," Dostoyevsky wrote in a letter to a friend in 1867, referring to Turgenev´s new novel Smoke. Turgenev by that time was living in France and Dostoyevsky, sarcastically, advised him to buy a telescope as, "otherwise, you can´t really see [Russia] at all". Turgenev was offended.
ellauri203.html on line 204: Le mariage de Maximilien et de Marie est célébré dans la chapelle du palais d’Hiver, à Saint-Pétersbourg, le 2 juillet 1839. Il donne lieu à 15 jours de festivités mais soulève la désapprobation des Moscovites, qui sont choqués de voir l’une de leurs princesses s’unir à un prince français, dont le père a participé à la prise de leur ville en 1812. Immédiatement après les épousailles, le duc de Leuchtenberg reçoit du tsar Nicolas Ier le prédicat d'altesse impériale et le titre de prince Romanovsky. Il est nommé major général de l'armée russe et colonel en chef du régiment de hussards de Kiev. Il reçoit par ailleurs une rente annuelle de 100 000 roubles. De son côté, le tsar confère à Marie une rente de 700 000 roubles ainsi qu'une somme de 2 millions payable en bons du trésor à 4%. Afin de loger le coupl e, l'empereur s'engage finalement à construire et à meubler à ses frais un palais meublé à Saint-Pétersbourg et un autre situé dans les environs de la capitale.
ellauri203.html on line 206: En attendant la construction de leur nouvelle résidence (baptisée « palais Marie »), Maximilien et son épouse s'installent au palais d'Hiver. Ils y restent jusqu'en 1845 et c'est là que naissent leurs quatre premiers enfants, Alexandra, Marie, Nicolas et Eugénie. Après cette date, le coupl e peut enfin prendre son indépendance et Maximilien transfère ses collections de tableaux, d'armes et de minéraux en Russie. Une bonne partie d'entre elles se trouvent aujourd'hui au musée de l'Ermitage ou dans d'autres institutions du pays.
ellauri203.html on line 208: Les premières années du mariage de Maximilien et de Marie sont heureuses et le coupl e donne le jour à une nombreuse progéniture. Cependant, les relations des deux époux se dégradent à partir de 1845, date à laquelle la grande-duchesse amorce une liaison avec le comte Grigori Alexandrovitch Stroganov. La pl upart des historiens considèrent d'ailleurs que Maximilien n'est pas le véritable père des princes Eugène, Serge (ru) et Georges de Leuchtenberg, qui seraient en réalité les fils de Stroganov. De son côté, Maximilien n'est pas non pl us un mari modèle: il multipl ie, au contraire, les conquêtes féminines et s'adonne au jeu. En réalité, la vie en Russie pèse au prince, qui est humilié de n'y être que le mari de sa femme.
ellauri203.html on line 215: Fyodor Dostoevsky´s novels mirrored his life: compl icated, tense and full of psychological unrest. He was as dedicated to the women that accompanied him on this difficult journey as he was to the novels that he felt compelled to write. Lets expl ore the great writer’s relationships with his three key hens, Isajeva, Suslova and Snitkina. (There were more, but they were not key.)
ellauri203.html on line 217: Dostoevsky was the only 19th-century Russian writer to be sentenced to hard labor, spending four years in a Siberian camp. As fortune – or misfortune – would have it, when the exhausted novelist was finally released, he encountered the writer Maria Isaeva. The relationship was compl icated from the very outset: when they met, Isaeva was married with a young son, and Dostoevsky was forced to wait until her husband passed away before he could publically offer her his wand.
ellauri203.html on line 219: However, this belated first love was not as simpl e as Dostoevsky had hoped. Isaeva began taunting the writer with letters telling him of her intention to marry one or other wealthy official. Although the pair did ultimately marry, their troubles continued, and the two never settled into a harmonious marriage, with Dostoevsky taking on a role more like a friend or brother to Isaeva, rather than a husband. Mark Slonim, an important Russian scholar, writes in his book The Three Loves of Dostoevsky: “He loved her for all these feelings that she excited in him. For everything that he gave her, for everything that was connected with her. And for all the pains from her.”
ellauri203.html on line 229: Anna Snitkina, who was 25 years Dostoevsky’s junior, was his stenographer during his work on The Gambler. The process of compl eting the novel engrossed both of them so much that they could not imagine life without each other, marrying in 1867. This particular novel was where Dostoevsky’s three great loves intersected: Appolinaria Suslova formed the basis for its protagonist, it was written as his first wife, Maria Isaeva, passed away, and stenographed by his future wife, Anna Snitkina.
ellauri203.html on line 231: To begin with, Dostoevsky only saw practicality in his marriage to Snitkina: he was in need of stability and confidence in the future. As a result, the union began down to head along the same route as his previous relationships. However, the coupl e’s extended “honeymoon” abroad, which ended up lasting four years, allowed them to escape Russia’s oppressive atmosphere and try to build a family. It began well: Sonya, a little girl, was born a year after their marriage. Tragedy soon struck, however, when Sonya passed away. The pair went on to have three more children, one of whom also died. They were married for 14 years until Dostoevsky’s death, in which time Snitkina experienced a great deal of anguish brought on by Dostoevsky’s difficult character and lifestyle, namely his jealousy and gambling addiction. However, she remained stoically committed to him and did not remarry after his death, when she was just 35.
ellauri203.html on line 242: Writing in the Los Angeles Times, a professor of Slavic languages praised their Dostoevsky translations, stating "the reason they have succeeded so well in bringing Dostoevsky into English is not just that they have made him sound bumpy or unnatural but that they have managed to capture and differentiate the characters' many bumpy and unnatural voices." A literary critic and essayist, wrote in The Sewanee Review that their Dostoevsky translations "have recaptured the rough and vulgar edge of Dostoevsky's style. This tone of the vulgar that Dostoevsky's writings are full of, so morbidly excessively, they have translated into a vernacular equal to his own." But recently, writing in The New York Review of Books in 2016, a critic argued that Pevear and Volokhonsky have established an industry of taking everything they can get their hands on written in Russian and putting it into flat, awkward English. Other translators have voiced similar criticism, both in Russia and in the English-speaking world. A Slavic studies scholar has written in Commentary that Pevear and Volokhonsky take glorious works and reduce them to awkward and unsightly muddles. Criticism has been focused on the excessive literalness of the coupl e's translations and the perception that they miss the original tone of the authors.
ellauri203.html on line 294: Toisen maailmansodan jälkeen Miłosz toimi ensin Puolan kansantasavallan dipl omaattina Yhdysvalloissa mutta ei viihtynyt siellä vaan palasi Eurooppaan ja siirtyi kulttuuriattaseaksi Pariisiin. Miłosz riitaantui hallituksen kanssa vuonna 1951 ja haki poliittista turvapaikkaa Ranskasta. Myöskään Ranskassa hän ei viihtynyt maan kulttuuriväen keskuudessa vallinneen poliittisen ilmanpiirin vuoksi. Älymystö ihaili kommunismia, ja Miłosz tunsi, että älymystön jäsenet käänsivät hänelle selkänsä. Siksi hän muutti uudestaan Yhdysvaltoihin. Siellä sentään ei ihailtu kommunismia! Päinvastoin vihailtiin!
ellauri203.html on line 319: By the rainspout young sparrows are pl aying Viimeiset varpuset kituvat viimeisessä lammikossa,
ellauri203.html on line 355: Luku III: Ketmam perustuu nykyiseen Iraniin 1800-luvun ranskalaisen dipl omaatin Arthur de Gobineaun kirjoituksiin. Kirjassaan Keski-Aasian uskonnot ja filosofiat Gobineau kuvailee Ketmanin käytäntöä, tekoa, jossa palvotaan islamia ja samalla salataan salainen islamin vastustus. Gobineau kuvailee käytäntöä laajalle levinneeksi islamilaisessa maailmassa, ja hän lainaa yhtä informanttiaan sanoneen: "Persiassa ei ole ainuttakaan oikeaa muslimia." Gobineau kuvaa edelleen Ketmanin käyttöä heterodoksisten näkemysten salaa levittämiseen ihmisille, jotka uskovat, että heille opetetaan islamilaista ortodoksiaa.
ellauri203.html on line 436: Shakespeare sanoi paremmin: Life is but a poor pl ayer... signifying nothing.
ellauri203.html on line 449: compl ex--would unroll before him in its terrifying sameness. The same
ellauri203.html on line 451: filth, the same vulgar pl easures, the same senseless sufferings in the
ellauri203.html on line 473: It was published first in 1866 in the first episode of the new literary magazine Epoch that was launched by Dostoevsky and his brother Mikhail. As we know Turgenev and Dostoevsky were not the best of friends. Turgenev had sent the story to Dostoevsky when he was in Baden Baden. Dostoevsky, however, was too busy pl aying roulette and returned the story without having read it. Mikhail told him in a letter that that had been a big mistake, because their magazine was sure to be a success if they could have a new Turgenev in the first episode. Dostoevsky proceeded to write an apologetic letter to Turgenev and managed to secure Phantoms for the magazine.
ellauri203.html on line 475: From an 1849 letter to Pauline Viardot we know that the inspiration came from a dream that Turgenev had had. In this dream there was a whitish creature claiming to be his brother Anatoli (Turgenev had two brothers: Nikholai and Sergei). They both turned into birds and flew over the ocean. In another letter Turgenev writes that he was looking for a way to connect several landscape sketches that he had written. He combined the flying with the landscapes and came up with a vampire woman to expl ain the flying.
ellauri203.html on line 610: planet.com/images/image280_3.jpg" />
ellauri203.html on line 631: Ovelana Tiihon pyytää Nikeltä heti anteexi, mehän ollaan kaikki syntiset samassa veneessä, Jeesus airoissa ja jumala peräpainona. Tiihon tietää mistä narusta vetää käteen narsistia. Narsisti ei siedä sitä säälittävän, koska se ei sitten olisikaan jotain erikoista, parempi kuin muut. Se ei siedä että sille nauretaan. Ei Dostokaan, sixi se oli niin hirmu kiukkunen kirjailija Karamazinoville. There's always something pl easing in another's calamity.
ellauri203.html on line 648: Martin, a respected doctor (huoh), his wife Karin, Karin's seventeen year old brother Minus, and widowed father David of Karin and Minus' have convened at the family's summer home on an island off the coast of Sweden to celebrate David's return from the Swiss Alps, where he was substantially compl eting his latest novel (huoh). The family has long lived a fantasy of they being a loving one, David's extended absences which are the cause of many of the family's problems. Without that parental guidance, Minus is at a confused and vulnerable stage of his life where he is a bundle of repressed emotions, most specifically concerning not feeling loved by his father and concerning the opposite sex (huoh). He is attracted to females as a collective but does not know how to handle blatant female sexuality, especially if it is directed his way. A month earlier Karin was released from a mental institution (huoh). Her doctor has told Martin that the likelihood that she will fully recover from her illness is low, her ultimate fate being that her mental state will disintegrate totally, although she has functioned well since her release. In his love for her, Martin has vowed to himself to see her through whatever she faces. As Karin begins to lose grip on reality, Minus is the one most directly affected, although it does bring out the issues all the men are facing with regard to their interrelationships.
ellauri203.html on line 665: "Make a vow to yourself, and with that great sacrifice you buy everything that you long for", ehdottaa Tiihon. Vitun uskontokamasaxat hieroo koko ajan kauppoja kuolleista sieluista, pl aneeraa pakkolunastuxia ja hintaralleja. Mutta ei. Niin paljon ei Stafylokokki sitä sentään rakasta. Tiihon pyllistää ja näkee kolmannella silmällä että Nikke panee vielä potin nokkiin ennenkö julkaisee nää tunnustuxet. "Cursed psychologist!" huutaa Nikke sattuvasti. Ne on kai sitten ne Marjan ja muiden porukoiden murhat, jotka on toki pahempia koska uhrina on myös aikuisia miehiä.
ellauri203.html on line 688: Sit pitäs vielä käydä läpitte noi Karamazinovin veljexet. Mutta se on luultavasti vielä pitkäpiimäisempi, ja poinzi takuulla on taas se sama: olin tuhma pl iis saisinko koivuniemen herraa paljaalle pyllylle.
ellauri204.html on line 34: Der eiserne Hans play:none">Mytopoetiikkaa
ellauri204.html on line 60: Am andern Tage, als sie mit dem König und allen Hofleuten sich zur Tafel gesetzt hatte und von ihrem goldenen Tellerlein aß, da kam, pl itsch pl atsch, pl itsch pl atsch, etwas die Marmortreppe heraufgekrochen, und als es oben angelangt war, klopfte es an die Tür und rief: "Königstochter, jüngste, mach mir auf!" Sie lief und wollte sehen, wer draußen wäre, als sie aber aufmachte, so saß der Frosch davor. Da warf sie die Tür hastig zu, setzte sich wieder an den Tisch, und es war ihr ganz angst. Der König sah wohl, daß ihr das Herz gewaltig klopfte, und sprach: "Mein Kind, was fürchtest du dich, steht etwa ein Riese vor der Tür und will dich holen?" - "Ach nein," antwortete sie, "es ist kein Riese, sondern ein garstiger Frosch." - "Was will der Frosch von dir?" - "Ach, lieber Vater, als ich gestern im Wald bei dem Brunnen saß und spielte, da fiel meine goldene Kugel ins Wasser. Und weil ich so weinte, hat sie der Frosch wieder heraufgeholt, und weil er es durchaus verlangte, so versprach ich ihm, er sollte mein Geselle werden; ich dachte aber nimmermehr, daß er aus seinem Wasser herauskönnte. Nun ist er draußen und will zu mir herein." Und schon klopfte es zum zweitenmal und rief:
ellauri204.html on line 94: Seuraavana päivänä, kun tyttö kuninkaan ja kaiken hovi-väen seurassa istui pöydän ääressä, syöden kulta-taltrikiltaan, silloimpa joku tuli, "pl itsis, pl atsis," portahia kömpien, ja ylös ehdittyään koputti se ovelle ja huusi: "kuninkaan-tytär nuorin, laske minut sisälle." Tämä juoksi katsomaan, ketä siellä, mutta kun hän oven aukaisi, istuipa tuossa sammakko. Silloin hän äkkiä oven sulki, meni taas istumaan pöydän äärehen ja oli aivan tuskissaan. Kuningas pian huomasi, mitenkä hänen tyttärensä sydäntä kovin tykytti, ja lausui: "lapsukaiseni, mitä pelkäät, onko oven takana ehkä joku jättiläinen, joka tahtoo sinut viedä mukahansa?" - "Eipä niinkään," tyttö vastasi, "ei siellä jättiläistä ole, vaan ompa sammakko ilkeä." - "Mitä sammakko sinusta tahtoo?" - "Voi rakas isäni, eilen, kun metsässä istuin kaivon vieressä leikittellen, putosi kulta-palloni vetehen. Koska tätä kovasti itkin, kävi sammakko palloa minulle noutamassa, ja lupasimpa sille, että se kumppanikseni pääsisi, koska se tuota kaikin mokomin vaati, mutta en hiukkaakaan aavistanut, että se saattaisi päästä pois vedestä. Nyt on se tuolla ulkona ja pyrkii tänne sisälle luokseni." Samassa ovea toistamiseen kolkutettiin ja ääni huusi:
ellauri204.html on line 326: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5f/MatthiasStom-SaintJerome-Nantes.jpg/440px-MatthiasStom-SaintJerome-Nantes.jpg" />
ellauri204.html on line 352: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d7/Antonio_da_Fabriano_II_-_Saint_Jerome_in_His_Study_-_Walters_37439.jpg/340px-Antonio_da_Fabriano_II_-_Saint_Jerome_in_His_Study_-_Walters_37439.jpg" />
ellauri204.html on line 367: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/dc/Colantonio%2C_Jerome_in_his_Study.jpg" />
ellauri204.html on line 386: With regards to Iron John, Bly had been giving talks on mythology to suppl ement his meagre income, and found that when he told this Grimm Brothers tale, originally Iron Hans, it resonated with men. In these early seminars, he asked men to re-enact a scene from The Odyssey, in which Odysseus is instructed to "lift his sword" as he approaches the symbol of matriarchal energy, Circe, to compel her to restore his men from slugs to manly form.
ellauri204.html on line 388: ploads/2010/08/Flint_Odyssey_11_100-1144x1600.jpg" style="width:30%;float:right" />
ellauri204.html on line 389: In The Odyssey , Odysseus and his crew land on Aeaea, and a team of scouts discover the palace of Circe, a witch goddess. Circe invites Odysseus’s men inside for a drink and then magically turns them into pigs. One man escapes to tell Odysseus about their comrades’ fate and Circe’s trickery. Odysseus bravely hopes to rescue his men from Circe’s enchantment; on the way to her house, Odysseus receives help from Hermes, who offers him a pl an and equips him with moly, a magical herb that will protect him from Circe’s witchcraft. The pl an works: the moly counters Circe’s magic, she swoons for Odysseus and transforms his crew from pigs back into men. Odysseus and Circe then make love. For a year. Finally, some of Odysseus’s crew shake him from the madness of his long Circean interlude and compel him to resume the journey home to Ithaca.
ellauri204.html on line 391: “So saying, Argeiphontes gave me the herb, drawing it from the ground, and showed me its nature. At the root it was black, but its flower was like milk. [305] Moly the gods call it, and it is hard for mortal men to dig; but with the gods all things are possible. Hermes then departed to high Olympus through the wooded isle, and I went my way to the house of Circe, and many things did my heart darkly ponder as I went. [310] So I stood at the gates of the fair-tressed goddess. There I stood and called, and the goddess heard my voice. Straightway then she came forth, and opened the bright doors, and bade me in; and I went with her, my heart sore troubled. She brought me in and made me sit on a silver-studded chair, [315] a beautiful chair, richly wrought, and beneath was a foot-stool for the feet. And she prepared me a potion in a golden cup, that I might drink, and put therein a drug, with evil purpose in her heart. But when she had given it me, and I had drunk it off, yet was not bewitched, she smote me with her wand, and spoke, and addressed me: [320] ‘Begone now to the sty, and lie with the rest of thy comrades.’ “So she spoke, but I, drawing my sharp sword from between my thighs, rushed upon Circe, as though I would slay her. But she, with a loud cry, ran beneath, and clasped my knees, and with wailing she spoke to me winged words: [325] “‘Who art thou among men, and from whence? Where is thy city, and where thy parents? Amazement holds me that thou hast drunk this charm and wast in no wise bewitched. For no man else soever hath withstood this charm, when once he has drunk it, and it has passed the barrier of his teeth. Nay, but the mind in thy breast is one not to be beguiled. [330] Surely thou art Odysseus, the man of ready device, who Argeiphontes of the golden wand ever said to me would come hither on his way home from Troy with his swift, black ship. Nay, come, put up thy sword in this here sheath, and let us two then go up into my bed, that couched together [335] in love we may put trust in each other.’ “So she spoke, but I answered her, and said:‘Circe, how canst thou bid me be gentle to thee, who hast turned my comrades into swine in thy halls, and now keepest me here, and with guileful purpose biddest me [340] go to thy chamber, and go up into thy bed, that when thou hast me stripped thou mayest render me a weakling and unmanned? Nay, verily, it is not I that shall be fain to go up into thy bed, unless thou, goddess, wilt consent to swear a mighty oath that thou wilt not pl ot against me any fresh mischief to my hurt.’
ellauri204.html on line 393: If you thought that a visit to the brothel district was going to be fun and sexy, the “Circe” episode’s opening stage directions quickly dispel you of that notion by establishing the unseemly setting of Joyce’s Nighttown. The tracks are “skeleton,” the signals warn of “danger,” the houses are “grimy,” the men are “stunted,” and the women “squabble” about price. Indeed, Encyclopaedia Britannica in 1885 labeled this part of Dublin “the worst slum in Europe”. Located in east Dublin between Montgomery Street and Tyrone (né Mecklenburgh) Street, Nighttown is an ugly pl ace filled with unsavory peopl e. Moly (ei Molly) yrtti oli luultavasti valkosipuli. Bloomin mielixeen kengittämän hoidon hampaat haisi valkosipulilta.
ellauri204.html on line 397: Bly recognised that these men were also distinguished by their unhappiness, which he asserted was caused by this passivity. He aimed to teach these men that simpl y "flashing the sword" was by no means an act of war, but showed what he called ‘a joyful decisiveness’, a sense of vivid aliveness. It was more like flashing their wieners.
ellauri204.html on line 402: With an emphasis on physical wellbeing – as well as the emotional, mental and spiritual – the mythopoetic empl oys movement, meditation and breathwork, often combining storytelling with music and dance. These activities can be seen as an extension to a form of reimagined shamanism (or neo-shamanism) popularised by Michael Harner, whose book The Way of the Shaman also appeared in 1990, the same year as Iron John and Women Who Run with the Wolves.
ellauri204.html on line 583: 14 is shorthand for the "14 Words" slogan: "We must secure the existence of our peopl e and a future for white children." The second is 88, which stands for "Heil Hitler" (H being the 8th letter of the alphabet). Kaverin 8 sekuntia meni harakoille, mutta sentään jää ikuinen maine kumikaulameediassa, toinen kahdexikko kyljellään.
ellauri204.html on line 631: While the Orthodox Marxist view of ideology held that the cultural "superstructure" was compl etely determined by the economic "base", the other Western Marxists gave more than a little finger back to Hegel and the power of "powerful ideas". Jamesons ideologeme was a near synonym to meme.
ellauri204.html on line 666: ”Ajassamme, jossa disinformaatio on entistä myyvempää, kulttuurijournalismin on luotettava ihmisten haluun asustaa Sanoma Oy:n kupl assa ja pidettävä sitä yllä.”
ellauri204.html on line 690: Tästä kusetuxesta mulla taitaa ollakin jo paasaus, juu albumissa 48 . Ihmiset ovat kehittyneet evoluutiossa ystävälliseksi ja empaattiseksi lajiksi, joka elää pienissä ryhmissä. Nyt ne ovat epäystävällinen ja pahansuopa laji joka elää valtavista kupl issa.
ellauri204.html on line 724: ploads/2018/09/anne-sexton2.jpg" />
ellauri204.html on line 729: Sexton suffered from severe bipolar disorder for much of her life, her first manic episode taking pl ace in 1954. After a second episode in 1955 she met Dr. Martin Orne, who became her long-term therapist at the Glenside Hospital. It was Orne who encouraged her to write poetry.
ellauri204.html on line 743: Furthermore, she had an "affair with" the therapist who repl aced Orne in the 1960s. Orne considered the "affair" with the second therapist (given the pseudonym "Ollie Zweizung" by Middlebrook and Linda Sexton) to be the catalyst that eventually resulted in her suicide. What a mess!
ellauri204.html on line 748: "You speak to me of narcissism but I repl y that it is a matter of my life" - Artaud.
ellauri204.html on line 750: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7a/Antonin_Artaud_1926.jpg/220px-Antonin_Artaud_1926.jpg" />
ellauri204.html on line 753: Antoine Marie Joseph Paul Artaud , better known as Antonin Artaud, was a French writer, poet, dramatist, visual artist, essayist, actor and theatre director. He is widely recognized as one of the major figures of the European avant-garde. In particular, he had a profound influence on twentieth-century theatre through his conceptualization of the Theatre of Cruelty. Known for his raw, surreal and transgressive work, his texts expl ored themes from the cosmologies of ancient cultures, philosophy, the occult, mysticism and indigenous Mexican practices. Hirveää scheissea.
ellauri204.html on line 830: pload/w_1200,h_900,ar_1.3333334,dpr_1,c_fill/q_auto:eco,f_auto,fl_lossy/39-7520075fcf86ccd469f" width="80%">
ellauri204.html on line 835: ploads/2013/05/vulture-child.jpg" width="80%" />
ellauri204.html on line 842: Part of the problem here is poverty porn makes money. “The use of poverty porn is a desperate attempt by charities to stay relevant,” said one of the participants. She said that poverty porn exists even within the United States, but it is generally seen through narrow stories about poverty about certain peopl e or areas of the country. She asked how often we heard stories about Appalachia that were not about poor hicks?
ellauri205.html on line 34: PUTIN JA EUROOPPA play:none">Eurodollareita
ellauri205.html on line 96: Tuulessa heiluvia puita on hiljattain ollut ainaskin siinä japsujen Äidit leffassa pl us siinä Frantz nimisessä pätkässä missä joku sakemannin suursodassa ampunut ranskis tuli pyytämään sen omaisilta niskalaukausta anteexi. Which in turn was based on Maurice Rostand 's 1930 French pl ay L'homme que j'ai tué. .
ellauri205.html on line 98: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri205.html on line 115: About the pl an
ellauri205.html on line 176: C'est cette notion grecque peut-être qui subsiste, sous le nom de kharma [sic], dans les pays d'Orient imprégnés de bouddhisme; mais l'Occident l'a perdue et n’a pl us même dans aucune de ses langues de mot pour l’exprimer; les idées de limite, de mesure, d'équilibre, qui devraient déterminer la conduite de la vie, n'ont pl us qu'un empl oi servile dans la technique. Nous ne sommes géomètres que devant la matière ! Les Grecs furent d'abord géomètres dans l'apprentissage de la vertu.
ellauri205.html on line 193: Minkä tautta Weil sanoo "La pl us belle amitié, celle entre compagnons de combats"? Onxtää jotain WW2 jälkitunnelmaa? Ja seuraava pätkä on kuin jostain supermän-sarjakuvasta:
ellauri205.html on line 195: Mais le triomphe le pl us pur de l'amour, la grâce suprême des guerres, c'est l'amitié qui monte au cœur des ennemis mortels. Elle fait disparaître la faim de vengeance pour le fils tué, pour l'ami tué, elle efface par un miracle encore pl us grand la distance entre bienfaiteur et suppl iant, entre vainqueur et vaincu :
ellauri205.html on line 202: Et lorsqu’ils se furent rassasiés de s’être contempl és l’un l'autre…
ellauri205.html on line 206: C'est par 1à que l'Iliade est une chose unique, par cette amertume qui procède de la tendresse, et qui s'étend sur tous les humains, égale comme la clarté du soleil. Jamais le ton ne cesse d’être imprégné d'amertume, jamais non pl us il ne s'abaisse à la pl ainte.
ellauri205.html on line 208: Rien de précieux, destiné ou non à périr, n'est méprisé, la misère de tous est exposée sans dissimulation ni dédain, aucun homme n'est pl acé au-dessus ou au-dessous de la condition commune à tous les hommes, tout ce qui est détruit est regretté. Vainqueurs et vaincus sont également proches, sont au même titre les semblables du poète et de l'auditeur. S'il y a une différence, c'est que le malheur des ennemis est peut-être ressenti pl us douloureusement.
ellauri205.html on line 217: Les Romains méprisaient les étrangers, les ennemis, les vaincus, leurs sujets, leurs esclaves; aussi n’ont-ils eu ni épopées ni tragédies. Ils rempl açaient les tragédies par les jeux de gladiateurs. Les Hébreux voyaient dans le malheur le signe du péché et par suite un motif légitime de mépris; ils regardaient leurs ennemis vaincus comme étant en horreur à Dieu même et condamnés à expier des crimes, ce qui rendait la cruauté permise et même indispensable. Aussi, aucun texte de l'Ancien Testament ne rend-il un son comparable à celui de l'épopée grecque, sinon peut-être certaines parties du poème de Job.
ellauri205.html on line 221: Mais rien de ce qu'ont produit les peupl es d'Europe ne vaut le premier poème connu qui soit apparu chez l’un d'eux. Ils retrouveront peut-être le génie épique quand ils sauront ne rien croire à l'abri du sort, ne jamais admirer la force, ne pas haïr les ennemis et ne pas mépriser les malheureux. Il est douteux que ce soit pour bientôt.
ellauri205.html on line 236: Mêler nos pl eurs au sang de mon malheureux fils.
ellauri205.html on line 241: Que malgré les compl ots d'une injuste famille,
ellauri205.html on line 250: crime est pl utôt une punition des dieux qu'un mouvement de sa
ellauri206.html on line 34: Riannan hemmottelupäivä play:none">Paapomista
ellauri206.html on line 61: Show, don't tell is a technique used in various kinds of texts to allow the reader to experience the story through actions, words, thoughts, senses, and feelings rather than through the author's exposition, summarization, and description. It avoids adjectives describing the author's analysis, but instead describes the scene in such a way that readers can draw their own conclusions. The technique appl ies equally to nonfiction and all forms of fiction, literature including haiku and Imagism poetry in particular, speech, movie making, and pl aywriting.
ellauri206.html on line 63: The concept is often attributed to Russian pl aywright Anton Chekhov, reputed to have said "Don't tell me the moon is shining; show me the glint of light on broken glass." What Chekhov actually said, in a letter to his brother, was "In descriptions of Nature one must seize on small details, grouping them so that when the reader closes his eyes he gets a picture. For instance, you’ll have a moonlit night if you write that on the mill dam a piece of glass from a broken bottle glittered like a bright little star, and that the black shadow of a dog or a wolf rolled past like a ball."
ellauri206.html on line 65: Its having become, by the mid-twentieth century, an important element in Anglo-Saxon narratological theory, according to dramatist and author Arthur E. Krows, the American dramatist Mark Swan told Krows about the pl aywriting motto "Show – not tell" on an occasion during the 1910s. In 1921, the same distinction, but in the form picture-versus-drama, was utilized in a chapter of Percy Lubbock's analysis of fiction, The Craft of Fiction. In 1927, Swan published a pl aywriting manual that made prominent use of the showing-versus-telling distinction throughout.
ellauri206.html on line 77: In Book III of his repulsive Republic (c. 373 BC), Plato examines the "style" of "poetry" (the term includes comedy, tragedy, epic and lyric poetry): All types narrate events, he argues, but by differing means. He distinguishes between narration or report (diegesis) and imitation or representation (mimesis). Tragedy and comedy, he goes on to expl ain, are wholly imitative types; the dithyramb is wholly narrative; and their combination is found in epic poetry. When reporting or narrating, "the poet is speaking in his own person; he never leads us to suppose that he is any one else"; when imitating, the poet produces an "assimilation of himself to another, either by the use of voice or gesture". In dramatic texts, the poet never speaks directly; in narrative texts, the poet speaks as him or herself.
ellauri206.html on line 88: As a result, poorer countries are experiencing their slowest growth in a generation, while middle-income nations are denied debt relief despite surging poverty levels. Most of the world’s poor are women and girls, who are paying a high price in lost healthcare, education and jobs. WTF Gutierres, don't you notice what 4 letter turd you just dropped from your upper sphincter? Grow!? Is this a time for the monkey pl ague to grow, do you think?
ellauri206.html on line 98: No new coal pl ants. No expansion in oil and gas expl oration.
ellauri206.html on line 107: He spoke of the need to both expand internet access to the nearly three billion peopl e still offline, and to address risks such as data misuse, misinformation and cyber-crime.
ellauri206.html on line 109: “Our personal information is being expl oited to control or manipulate us, change our behaviours, violate our human rights, and undermine democratic institutions. Our choices are taken away from us without us even knowing it”, he said. The most efficient propaganda machine ever, mainlining western capitalist g***th values straight into tiny monkey brains.
ellauri206.html on line 142: Riku pl aneeraa antaa suoneen ketamiinia vikisevälle Innalle jonka skizot purkautuu vittumaisesti sexin aikana. Nyt trendaa että ihmisten normaaleista ominaisuuxista medikalisoidaan joku ongelma. ADHD on tavallinen touho, PDA on liialla parental kontrollilla nurkkaan ajettu.
ellauri206.html on line 149: plays-football-with-members-of-the-limbless-association-in-london-march-17-2013-abbas-was-injured-losing-both-arms-in-a-missile-attack-on-his-home-in-2003-which-killed-13-members-of-his-family-leaving-him-an-orphan-subsequently-he-became-a-british-citizen-in-2010-the-iraq-war-began-10-years-ago-this-week-photograph-taken-on-march-17-2013-reuterspaul-hackett-britain-tags-military-politics-society-sport-soccer-conflict-2E6A949.jpg" />
ellauri206.html on line 194: Nicholas näytti sitten yleisölle kuvasarjan itkevistä lapsista. Ensimmäisessä kuvassa oli ehkä viisivuotias tyttö, jonka kyynärpäästä katkennutta kättä suojasi likainen verinen side. Joltakin pojalta oli puhjennut silmä, jonkun toisen suu oli revennyt rumaksi repuxi jonka sisältä hohtivat helmenvalkeat pikku hampaat. Yhden tytön yläruumiin iho oli palanut kauttaaltaan mustaksi ja koppuraiseksi kuin uuniin unohtunut lasagne, ja häneltä puuttuivat molemmat kädet. Murrosikäisen pojan jalat olivat katkenneet polven yläpuolelta. Hänen kasvoillaan oli pieniä tummia aknearpimaisia täpl iä.
ellauri206.html on line 250: Il adopte le pseudonyme de Jean Lorrain, seule condition pour écrire tout en continuant à recevoir un soutien financier de la part de son père armateur. Sa mère pointe une épingle au hasard sur une page de dictionnaire, désignant le mot « lorrain », et il approuve cette trouvaille pour son côté « simpl e, sonore, solide ».
ellauri206.html on line 252: IL fréquente le salon de Charles Buet, où il rencontre Jules Barbey d'Aurevilly, Joris-Karl Huysmans, François Coppée, Léon Bloy, Laurent Tailhade et autres cretins. Il rencontre Edmond de Goncourt, avec qui il restera lié jusqu'à la mort de ce dernier en 1896, et qui fut son principal protecteur. Edmond de Goncourt, dans la récente édition compl ète en 22 volumes du Journal des Goncourt, se montre curieux de toutes les questions sexuelles et particulièrement de l'homophilie. À partir de 1884, Edmond de Goncourt, jusque-là banalement réactionnaire, devient un antisémite enragé, Jésus l'a sauvé après 27 années d'homosexualité. Il se veut esthète et dandy en même temps qu'expl orateur tapageux du vice et de la vulgarité, curieux assemblage qui verse souvent dans le pire mauvais goût, et qui lui vaut le mépris hautain de Robert de Montesquiou, dont Lorrain, pour sa part, fait volontiers sa tête de Turc pour sa prétention à l'élégance et à la chasteté. « Lorrain », écrit Léon Daudet dans ses Souvenirs, « avait une tête poupine et large à la fois de coiffeur vicieux, les cheveux partagés par une raie parfumée au patchouli, des yeux globuleux, ébahis et avides, de grosses lèvres qui jutaient, giclaient et coulaient pendant son discours. Son torse était bombé comme le bréchet de certains oiseaux charognards. Lui se nourrissait avidement de toutes les calomnies et immondices. »
ellauri206.html on line 269: Figure majeure du romantisme français, il est essentiellement connu pour ses poèmes et ses nouvelles, notamment son ouvrage Les Filles du feu, recueil de nouvelles (la pl us célèbre étant Sylvie), son recueil de sonnets (Les Chimères, dont le célébrissime El Desdichado, pl acé sous le signe du Soleil noir de la Mélancolie.
ellauri206.html on line 292: Today, I’m going to present you a rather compl icated French poem, which speaks of French historical characters and refers to legends from France and the Roman and Greek antiquity.
ellauri206.html on line 303: La fleur qui pl aisait tant à mon coeur désolé, The flower that my afflicted heart liked so much
ellauri206.html on line 311: Modulant tour à tour sur la lyre d’Orphée Taking turn to pl ay on Orpheus’ lyre
ellauri206.html on line 317: expl anation of the text and the meaning,
ellauri206.html on line 373: Vai pääsinkö nykyaikaan liian aikaisin? Jäikö liian paljon pois? Pikku Helmi vuokramökissä hyppäämässä ensimmäisenä jääkylmään veteen pulloineen ja ilman pulloja, Kesät Sysmässä ja Starhillin razutila, Satu, Venla, Elsa naapurissa, muut Ynkin kaverit ja vuodet joista moni täällä on puhujaa paremminkin perillä, työura eri asiakasrajapinnoissa, opiskelu Lahdessa ja Hesassa, vappushokkelot, vuoju- ynnä muu huojuva bilehileily (älkää pl iis särkekö paljoa tällä kertaa!) yhteiset ja omat kodit kaukaisessa Vallilassa, Arabiassa ja Kumpulassa, kesäinen autoilu Anhevanmaalla, perhosten nappaus ja laskenta, kandivaiheen aihe villiinnytys.
ellauri206.html on line 448: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/18/Pierre_gassendi.jpg/250px-Pierre_gassendi.jpg" />
ellauri206.html on line 454: Selon le témoignage de ses contemporains, Gassendi se levait régulièrement à trois heures du matin, jamais pl us tard que quatre heures, et quelquefois à deux. Il étudiait jusqu'à onze heures, à moins de recevoir une visite et se remettait à l'étude vers deux ou trois heures après midi jusqu'à huit. Il soupait légèrement (une tisane tiède, des légumes, rarement de la viande) et se couchait entre neuf et dix. On le disait pieux, et pratiquant avec scrupule ses devoirs de prêtre ; ses paroissiens l'appelaient le saint prêtre. Par sa pauvreté, sa modestie, sa douceur, son humanité, sa bienfaisance, sa charité et sa simpl icité, il faisait figure d'un anachorète, vivant dans le monde selon la règle d'un monastère. « Le pl us grand philosophe parmi les hommes de lettres, et le pl us grand homme de lettres parmi les philosophes », sanoi gibboni. Peu d'auteurs ont imaginé qu'il s'agissait là d'une posture, ou d'un masque.
ellauri206.html on line 458: « M. Gassendi ayant été toujours si curieux de chercher à justifier par les expériences la vérité des spéculations que la philosophie lui propose, et se trouvant à Marseille en l'an 1641 fit voir sur une galère qui sortit exprèz en mer par l'ordre de ce prince, qu'une pierre laschée du pl us haut du mast, tandis que la galère vogue avec toute la vitesse possible, ne tombe pas ailleurs qu'elle ne feroit si la même galère étoit arrêtée et immobile. »
ellauri207.html on line 33: KONGON OSKARI play:none">Konnankoukkuja
ellauri207.html on line 89: Like no work since the Arithmetica of Diophantus two millennia before, L. C. Parnault’s Dimensions in Mathematics presents the fullness of mathematical knowledge attained by man. From Thales to Turing, Pythagoras to Euclid, Archimedes to Newton, the Riemann Hypothesis to Fermat’s Last Theorem, Parnault escorts both serious mathematicians and the non-mathematical mind through the deepest mysteries of mathematics. Along the way he offers the greatest expositions yet of number theory, combinatorial topology, the analytics of compl exity, and his own groundbreaking work on spherical astronomy. Dimensions equips even elementary readers with the tools to solve the logical puzzles of the perfect universe that can exist only in the mind of a mathematician.
ellauri207.html on line 91: “Dr. Parnault’s elegant expl ications of seemingly every extant mathematical concept or quandary make this text as indispensible as any in our field,” says Fields Medal-winning MIT Professor Gerald Lambeau. “His presentation of combinatorial mathematics left me breathless.”
ellauri207.html on line 95: In addition to being a milestone for the field, the publication of Dimensions in Mathematics is a true publishing event, a crowning achievement in our centennial year. We’re extremely proud to finally satisfy the millions of Millennium readers who’ve sought out the book, and are deepl y humbled by the experience of working with the legendary Dr. Parnault.
ellauri207.html on line 174: Michael Douglas, son of Kirk Douglas, was accused of masturbating in front of an empl oyee. To the claim that he masturbated in front of her, Douglas said, "This is a compl ete lie, fabrication, no truth to it whatsoever." He will again reprise his role in the upcoming film Ant-Man and the Wasp: Quantumania (2023).
ellauri207.html on line 236: Lilya 4-ever is a 2002 crime drama film written and directed by Lukas Moodysson, which was released in Sweden on 23 August 2002. It depicts the downward spiral of Lilja Michailova, pl ayed by Oksana Akinshina, a girl in the former Soviet Union whose mother abandons her to move to the United States.
ellauri207.html on line 327: Turning the sad incident unfairly into an issue of gun control legislation, Biden impl ored law enforcement officers to "turn this pain in the ass into pump action" as he ticked through some of the mass shootings since the 2012 massacre at Sandy Hook Elementary School in Newtown, Connecticut, when he was vice president.
ellauri207.html on line 330: It is the deadliest shooting at a school since the Sandy Hook massacre in Connecticut in 2012 that left 26 peopl e dead, including 20 children between 6 and 7 years old. A big hand to Uvalde and Texas! Robb School Is The Best!
ellauri207.html on line 346: Tuotesijoittelun vuoxi Lisbet pysähtyi Seven Eleveniin (charge: $10K per mention) ja osti: jättipaketin Billyn pannupitsaa (5Kkr tack), 3 Findusin pakastekalapaistosta (3Kkr varsågod), 3 Pågensin pekonipiirasta (2Kkr får jag be), kilon amer. Granny Smith omenia ($1K thanx), 1/2 kg Arla ost, Arla mjölk (totalt 2Kkr), Jacobs Krönung kahvia (1Kkr), kartongin Mallu Lightia ($15K, sorry) ja iltapäivälehdet (DN och Expressen, 0,5kr var). Tähänkin ostoslistaan (ja näitä on vaikka kuinka) Stig sai menemään kirjasta yhden kappaleen, tuotto n. 2Mkr pl us filmi- ja sarjiskoikeudet. Rei Shimuran ruumiilla oli jalassa Niken tohvelit, jotka olivat säilyneet teräkunnossa vaikka ruumis oli muuten mätänemistilassa. Kyllä kannattaa ostaa edustamiamme laatumerkkejä.
ellauri207.html on line 376: lokakuussa 2019. Ibrahimović osti marraskuussa 2019 noin neljänneksen Allsvenskan-jalkapallojoukkue Hammarbysta. Perhe eli köyhyydessä, Ibrahimovićin mukaan edes ruokaa ei aina ollut, mutta oli sentään jalkapallojoukkue. Riikinkukkorausku on Stingray. Eikös se ollut Corvette? Hollantilainen sota-alus eikä prinssinmakkara. Riikikukkorauskun selässä on täpl iä, siitä nimi. Jenkeille pääasia on se sting. Just sellasia ne on. Niistä oli 50-luvulla hienoa kun "ihmisille" vaarallinen liljalaji oli lähes saatu kitketyxi sukupuuttoon Havaijin saarelta. Vittu ize ne pitäs sieltä kitkeä. Mä en käsitä miten Stigu jaxoi kexiä noin paljon raakoja pahanilkisiä ja pahansuopia juttuja. Se varmaan tosissaan vihasi Erlan isäänsä ja Roope-veljeä. No lähtihän siitä paljon massia. Ois voinut ostaa vaikka loput jalkapallojoukkuesta. Mut slaagi ehti ensixi, onnexi.
ellauri207.html on line 382: plukker.nl/wp-content/upl oads/2009/08/milenium.jpg" height="500px" />
ellauri210.html on line 34: Loppupään dadaisteja play:none">Dadaa
ellauri210.html on line 35: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e9/Guignol_in_Lyon_1.jpg/280px-Guignol_in_Lyon_1.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri210.html on line 40: Piha-Anteron huumorin määritelmä on freudilaisen huumoriton: démenti de la réalité, affirmation grandiose au principe du pl aisir. Se on nähdäxeni aivan hakoteillä. Huumori on nimenomaan tosiasioiden tunnustamista, ja sen tajuamista, etteivät ne ole huisin tärkeitä. Mikään ole kuolemanvakavaa, edes kuolema. Huumorille on kaikki suhteellista, se vaatii suhteellisuudentajua. Siihen nähden Anteron kovan linjan suhteettomuus vaikuttaa suht sentimentaaliselta. Vaikka kirjan takakannessa se vakuuttaa, että musta huumori on sentimentaalisuudelle vihainen kuin rakkikoira. No pääasiahan on että nyt voin vihdoin palauttaa Andrein kirjasen yliopistolle, sillä se on lainattu Seijan kortilla. Se on läpitte!
ellauri210.html on line 59: Yllättävää kyllä seuraava musta humoristi on Andre Gide. Ei se musta juuri humoristiselta vaikuta, vaan ikävältä narsistiselta luonteelta. Muzamaahan voi sanoa vaikka Chapl inista.
ellauri210.html on line 67: « Monsieur Gide n'a pas l'air d'un enfant d'amour, ni d'un éléphant, ni de pl usieurs hommes : il a l'air d’un artiste ; et je lui ferai ce seul compl iment, au reste désagréable, que sa petite pl uralité provient de ce fait qu'il pourrait très aisément être pris pour un cabotin (komeljanttari). Son ossature n'a rien de remarquable ; ses mains sont celles d'un fainéant, très blanches, ma foi ! Dans l'ensemble, c'est une toute petite nature. »
ellauri210.html on line 78: His best known pl ay The Playboy of the Western World was poorly received, due to its bleak ending, demeaning depiction of Irish bloody peasants, and idealisation of parricide, leading to hostile audience reactions and riots in Dublin.
ellauri210.html on line 89: Jarry a vécu comme il lui pl aisait avec ses trois attributs : la bicyclette, le revolver et l’absinthe.
ellauri210.html on line 92: Le 28 mai 1906, Jarry écrit à Rachilde : « (Le Père Ubu) n’a aucune tare ni au foie, ni au cœur, ni aux reins, pas même dans les urines ! Il est épuisé, simpl ement, et sa chaudière ne va pas éclater mais s’éteindre. Il va s’arrêter tout doucement, comme un moteur fourbu. » Épuisé, malade, harcelé par ses créanciers, Jarry fait des allers et retours Paris-Laval, ou il meurt.
ellauri210.html on line 97: Sigmund Freud analysoi Charlie Chapl inia
ellauri210.html on line 99: Vuonna 1931 sekä Sigmund Freud että Charlie Chapl in olivat maineensa huipulla. Chapl inin maailmanlaajuinen lipputulon kiilto oli väistynyt kaikenlaiselle kaupalle: nukeille, sarjakuvakirjoille. Siellä oli jopa hittikappale, "Kuu paistaa kirkkaasti Charlie Chapl inille.” Sillä välin Freud oli saavuttanut tason, jolla ei ole vertaansa vailla akateemisen maailman yleensä lumoamattomassa maailmassa. Jos Chapl inilla oli maailman tunnistetuimmat kasvot, Freud oli sen tunnetuin mieli. Mutta heidän poluilleen ei ollut juurikaan syytä risteämään. Chapl in harvoin lopetti työskentelyn riittävän kauan lähteäkseen Los Angelesista, ja Freud suhtautui julkisesti halveksivasti elokuvateollisuuteen. Psykoanalyytikko tiivisti tunteensa ystävälle lähettämässään kirjeessä: ”Elokuvaus näyttää olevan yhtä väistämätöntä kuin sivupoikahiusten leikkauksia, mutta en leikkaa itseäni sillä tavalla enkä halua olla henkilökohtaisessa yhteydessä kenenkään kanssa elokuva."
ellauri210.html on line 101: Freud kirjoitti yleensä vain niin sanotuista "suurista" taiteilijoista. Hän analysoi parimurhaa Dostojevskin teoksissa, kirjoitti Leonardo da Vincin lapsuudesta ja pohti Michelangelon teosten emotionaalisia vaikutuksia. Mutta vuonna 1931 Freud puhui ystävälleen lähettämässään kirjeessä hieman Charlie Chapl inista.
ellauri210.html on line 103: Ei ole vain yllättävää, että tämä elokuvanvihaaja oli todella katsonut Chapl inin elokuvia, hän myös päätti antaa hänelle kiitosta. Sen sijaan, että olisi hylännyt Chapl inin, hän kutsui häntä "suureksi neroksi" ja huomautti haikeasti, että hän olisi halunnut tavata Chapl inin, joka oli äskettäin vieraillut Wienissä, mutta keskeytti matkansa. (Freud spekuloi, että Chapl in lähti aikaisin, koska ei kestänyt kylmää säätä.)
ellauri210.html on line 105: Kirjeessä Freud käänsi psykoanalyyttisen katseensa Chapl inin elokuviin. Freud väitti, että kaikkien taiteilijoiden teokset ovat "läheisesti sidoksissa heidän lapsuusmuistoihinsa", eikä Chapl in ollut poikkeus. Kuten Kulkuri, Freud väitti, Chapl in "näyttää vain itseään sellaisena kuin hän oli varhaisessa synkässä nuoruudessaan".
ellauri210.html on line 107: Chapl in kasvoi 1800-luvun Lontoossa sairaan äidin ja poissaolevan isän kanssa, ja hänen varhaisia vuosia leimasi äärimmäinen köyhyys. Chapl in varttui äitinsä Hannahin kanssa mielisairaaloissa ja niistä poissa työhuoneessa ja köyhien lasten instituutissa. Kaiken tämän ajan nuori Charlie tarkkaili ympärillään olevia ihmisiä. Myöhempinä vuosina hän alkoi kutoa elokuviinsa omaelämäkerrallisia yksityiskohtia ja lapsuusmuistoja. Hänen lyhytelokuvassaan Helppo katuHän esimerkiksi näytteli ällöttävää poliisia, joka lähetettiin uudistamaan huonoa naapurustoa ja loi uudelleen ”East Streetin”, Etelä-Lontoon kadun, jossa hän syntyi. Jopa The Trampin kuuluisa kulhollinen sekoitus perustui lapsuuden muistoon "Rummy Binksistä", paikallisesta juopaasta, joka horjui naapurustossa. Kaiken tämän tietäen ei ole yllättävää, että Freud piti Chapl inia "niin sanottuna poikkeuksellisen yksinkertaisena ja läpinäkyvänä tapauksena".
ellauri210.html on line 109: Lue Freudin täydellinen Charlie Chapl inin analyysi alta:
ellauri210.html on line 113: On niin kiehtova kokemus, että joudun perustelemaan teorioitani Mmea kohtaan. Yvette ja Max-setä. Toivon vain, että se olisi mahdollista muuten kuin kirjallisesti, huolimatta huonosta puheestani ja heikentyneestä kuulostani. Ja minulla ei todellakaan ole aikomustakaan antaa periksi sen tunnustuksen lisäksi, että tiedämme niin vähän. Tiedät esimerkiksi, että Charlie Chapl in on ollut viime päivinä Wienissä. Melkein minäkin olisin nähnyt hänet, mutta täällä oli hänelle liian kylmää ja hän lähti taas nopeasti. Hän on epäilemättä suuri taiteilija; varmasti hän esittää aina yhtä ja samaa hahmoa; vain heikko, köyhä, avuton, kömpelö nuori, jolle asiat kuitenkin lopulta menevät hyvin. Luuletko nyt, että tätä roolia varten hänen täytyy unohtaa oma egonsa? Päinvastoin, hän soittaa aina vain itseään, kuten hän oli varhaisessa synkässä nuoruudessaan. Hän ei pääse eroon noista vaikutelmista ja saa tähän päivään asti itselleen korvauksen tuon elämänsä menneen ajanjakson turhautumisesta ja nöyryytyksistä. Hän on niin sanotusti poikkeuksellisen yksinkertainen ja läpinäkyvä tapaus. Ajatus siitä, että taiteilijoiden saavutukset liittyvät läheisesti heidän lapsuusmuistoihinsa, vaikutelmiinsa, sortoa ja pettymyksiä, on jo tuonut meille paljon valistusta ja siitä syystä tullut erittäin suureksi kallisarvoinen meille. Uskalsin kerran lähestyä analyyttisesti yhtä suurimmista, joista tunnemme valitettavasti hyvin vähän: Leonardo da Vinciä. Pystyin ainakin tekemään todennäköiseksi, että Pyhä Anna, Neitsyt ja lapsi, jossa voit vierailla Louvrea ei voida täysin ymmärtää (ymmärrettävä) ilman merkittävää lapsuuden historiaa Leonardo. Eikä voisi, ehkä paljon muutakaan.
ellauri210.html on line 123: Moreover, Freud (1960) followed Herbert Spencer's ideas of energy being conserved, bottled up, and then released like so much steam venting to avoid an expl osion. Sixi porukat raivon sijasta joskus räjähtävät nauramaan. Freud was imagining psychic or emotional energy, and this idea is now thought of as the relief theory of laughter. Lisää aiheesta albumissa 30 .
ellauri210.html on line 129: Jarry obtient en 1890 la seconde partie du baccalauréat, mention "Bien". En 1891-1892, il est élève d’Henri Bergson et condiscipl e de Léon-Paul Fargue et d’Albert Thibaudet au lycée Henri-IV. Il échoue au concours d'entrée à l’École normale supérieure (trois échecs successifs suivis de deux échecs pour la licence ès lettres).
ellauri210.html on line 146: Absolu 28 du 8 septembre au 5 octobre Ce mois inclut l'équinoxe d'automne de l'hémisphère nord, le pl us souvent le 14 Absolu (ou 21 septembre), ou le lendemain, certaines années la veille, voire le surlendemain.
ellauri210.html on line 152: Sable 28 du 1er décembre au 28 décembre Ce mois inclut le solstice d'hiver de l'hémisphère nord, le pl us souvent le 21 Sable (ou 21 décembre).
ellauri210.html on line 158: Pédale 28 du 23 ou 24 février au 22 mars Ce mois inclut l'équinoxe de printemps de l'hémisphère nord, le pl us souvent le 26 Pédale ou (20 mars).
ellauri210.html on line 166: Gidouille 29 du 15 juin au 13 juillet Ce mois inclut le solstice d'été de l'hémisphère nord, le pl us souvent le 7 Gidouille (ou 21 juin), ainsi que le dernier jour ajouté hors-semaine appelé « hunyadi ».
ellauri210.html on line 174: Les saints sont presque tous modifiés (Saint Jean-Pierre Brisset, par exempl e, en fait partie).
ellauri210.html on line 299: ploads/2015/09/maxiart-caricatura-di-Pablo-Picasso.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri210.html on line 336: Picasso was a poet and a pl aywright.
ellauri210.html on line 342: ploads/2015/08/Picasso-annotated-poem-manuscript-December-24-1935.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri210.html on line 345: ploads/2016/11/olga.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri210.html on line 356: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/23/Arthur_Cravan-Jack_Johnson.JPG/170px-Arthur_Cravan-Jack_Johnson.JPG" />
ellauri210.html on line 365: One of them was the Swiss enema Arthur Cravan. Described by one critic as “a world tramp … a traverser of borders and resister of orders,” Cravan traveled the globe in the early 1900s by forging documents and assuming false identities, preening, harassing, and haranguing, as he went. He was hailed by André Breton as a pivotal precursor of Dadaism, and belonged to that category of floating prewar avant-gardists whose legacy resides more in their mode of living than their artistic creations. Indeed, he declared himself anti-art and avowed boxing to be the ultimate creative expression of the modern, American-tinged age. He’s often referred to as a “poet-boxer,” though he wasn’t especially accompl ished as either; his real talent appears to have been making a spectacle of himself, in every sense. Publicist rather than a pugilist.
ellauri210.html on line 369: That journey began in 1903 when, aged sixteen, he was kicked out of his boarding school for an egregious act of indiscipl ine—according to some, he hit a teacher—and, inspired by his hero Arthur Rimbaud, he left Switzerland in search of adventure. Over the next several years, Cravan took up with hookers in Berlin, hoboed his way from New York to California, and worked in the engine room of a steamship bound for the South Pacific, jumping ship when it docked in Australia. But it was in Paris that the legend of the man we know as Arthur Cravan—writer, brawler, and hoaxer—was cemented. Within the space of six years, he scandalized polite society, infuriated the avant-garde, slugged it out with one of the greatest heavyweights of all time, and then disappeared without a trace.
ellauri210.html on line 373: By the time Johnson arrived in Paris, Cravan had carved out a reputation as a boxer himself, a discipl ine he first picked up while traveling across the USA. He was also known as an ardent proponent of the “American” attitude toward life, by which he meant living according to desire and instinct, and telling so-called civilized society to take a running jump. In an essay titled “To Be or Not To Be … American,” he wrote that, thanks to the influence of cakewalk dancers, track athletes, and boxers such as Joe Jeanette, the whole of Paris had turned American. “Overnight,” Cravan said, “everyone began to spit and swear” and “floated around in clothes two sizes too big for them.” He finished the piece with a crib sheet for how to pass as American: “Chew … never speak … always look busy … and, above all else, crown yourself with arrogance.” It was advice he followed assiduously. How right, how true, to this day.
ellauri210.html on line 375: John Sholto Douglas, 9th Marquess of Queensberry (20 July 1844 – 31 January 1900), was a British nobleman, remembered for his atheism, his outspoken views, his brutish manner, for lending his name to the "Queensberry Rules" that form the basis of modern boxing, and for his role in the downfall of the Irish author and pl aywright Oscar Wilde.
ellauri210.html on line 379: At the height of his fame and success, while The Importance of Being Earnest (1895) was still being performed in London, Wilde prosecuted the Marquess of Queensberry for criminal libel. The Marquess was the father of Wilde's lover, Lord Alfred Douglas. The libel trial unearthed evidence that caused Wilde to drop his charges and led to his own arrest and trial for gross indecency with men. After two more trials he was convicted and sentenced to two years' hard labour, the maximum penalty, and was jailed from 1895 to 1897. During his last year in prison, he wrote De Profundis (published posthumously in 1905), a long letter which discusses his spiritual journey through his trials, forming a dark counterpoint to his earlier philosophy of pl easure. On his release, he left immediately for France, and never returned to Ireland or Britain. There he wrote his last work, The Ballad of Reading Gaol (1898), a long poem commemorating the harsh rhythms of prison life. What an opportunity for a man of his caliber, one would have thought.
ellauri210.html on line 383: The money Cravan earned from the Johnson fight helped him buy his passage out of Europe, and what he thought was safety from the war. In January 1917, he sailed for New York. Dozens of other European artists and intellectuals were making the same journey at the time; one of Cravan’s shipmates was Leon Trotsky, who noted in his diary that he’d met a man who claimed to be related to Oscar Wilde and “who frankly declared that he would rather smash a Yankee’s face in the noble art of boxing than be done in by a German.” Cravan didn’t stay in New York long; just long enough to put several noses metsphorically out of joint. He spl it his time between sleeping rough in Central Park and hobnobbing with Greenwich Village bohemians. Among them was the poet Mina Loy, with whom Cravan began an intense love affair.
ellauri210.html on line 394: « Monsieur Gide n'a pas l'air d'un enfant d'amour, ni d'un éléphant, ni de pl usieurs hommes : il a l'air d’un artiste ; et je lui ferai ce seul compl iment, au reste désagréable, que sa petite pl uralité provient de ce fait qu'il pourrait très aisément être pris pour un cabotin (komeljanttari). Son ossature n'a rien de remarquable ; ses mains sont celles d'un fainéant, très blanches, ma foi ! Dans l'ensemble, c'est une toute petite nature. »
ellauri210.html on line 398: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/23/Arthur_Cravan-Jack_Johnson.JPG/170px-Arthur_Cravan-Jack_Johnson.JPG" />
ellauri210.html on line 426: Näkee mun nousevan kannelle into piukeena, Me vit prendre pl ace à bord terriblement excité,
ellauri210.html on line 434: Ja mun ruokahalu kasvaa tästä vitaalista suihkusta, Et doucher mon appétit par ce pl ongeon vital,
ellauri210.html on line 453: Sateen alla, auringon, sekä tähtisirkuxen, Sous la pl uie, et sous le soleil, et sous le cirque étoilé,
ellauri210.html on line 491: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Jacob_van_Hoddis.JPG/220px-Jacob_van_Hoddis.JPG" />
ellauri210.html on line 503: ploads/2014/02/artist-dolls-lotte-pritzel-001-624x675.jpg" />
ellauri210.html on line 602: Duchamp oli se häiskä joka teki taidetta kusilaarista liimamalla sen päälle lapun "The Fountain". Olipa nokkelaa. Duchamp oli Anteron parhaita kavereita, sixi se pääsi mukaan tähän luetteloon vaikkei ollut kovin hauskakaan. Millaisia olivat sen muut töräyxet? Ses pl us belles pensées?
ellauri210.html on line 604: Les voyages interpl anétaires semblent être l'un des tous premiers pas vers le soi-disant « progrès scientifique » et pourtant en dernière analyse, il ne s'agit que d'un agrandissement du territoire mis à la disposition de l'homme.
ellauri210.html on line 608: Le grand ennemi de l'art, c'est le bon goût. Le goût est une source de pl aisir, l'art n'est pas une source de pl aisir, c'est une source qui n'a pas de couleur, pas de goût. L'art est une chose beaucoup pl us profonde que le goût d'une époque. Je me suis forcé à me contredire pour éviter de me conformer à mon propre goût. Je suis dégoutant, et ca me goute.
ellauri210.html on line 655: son pis est rempl i d'éclairs sen pissa on täynnä salamia
ellauri210.html on line 678: rempl ies de cœurs percés de flèches täynnä nuolien lävistämiä sydämiä
ellauri210.html on line 729: Di Chirico è un lottatore compl eto, efficace sia nella lotta a piedi che in quella a terra. Tra i suoi principali punti di forza figurano l'abilità nelle prese e un ottimo striking.
ellauri210.html on line 737: Sommes debordes. Egorgeons enfant. Repassez pl us tard.
ellauri210.html on line 751: Appelé au front lors de la Première Guerre mondiale, il en revient blessé et profondément marqué. Il est blessé aux jambes le 25 septembre 1915 à Tahure, à la suite de l'expl osion d'un sac de grenades pendant la Bataille de Champagne (1915). Pacifiste et anarchiste, il est dégouté par la guerre. Sa personnalité a exercé une profonde influence sur André Breton qu'il rencontre pendant sa convalescence. Peu de temps après le conflit, Jacques Vaché meurt par overdose d'opium dans un hôtel nantais à l'âge de 23 ans.
ellauri210.html on line 757: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a0/Chaptal_1912_Breton_Fraenkel.jpg/297px-Chaptal_1912_Breton_Fraenkel.jpg" />
ellauri210.html on line 769: En 1928, Benjamin Péret écrit un ouvrage au titre basé sur une contrepèterie : Les Rouilles encagées. Le livre est saisi et interdit jusqu'en 1954 où l'éditeur Éric Losfeld publie, à tirage limité à cent exempl aires, une édition illustrée par des dessins d’Yves Tanguy. Une nouvelle édition publiée en 1970 sera de nouveau interdite jusqu'en 1975.
ellauri210.html on line 771: Les Couilles Enragées (Eng: Mad Balls) is a book by Benjamin Péret written in 1928.. Eventually published under a pseudonym in 1954 by Eric Losfeld as Les Rouilles Encagees, Mad Balls is an expl osion of Péret's virulent anti-religiousness and erotic delirium. It featured seven expl icit illustrations by Yves Tanguy.
ellauri210.html on line 782: After the war, Tanguy is sent back to Spain, Barcelona where he learns that his grandmother has recently passed away and there is no one else to take care of him. He is sent to a reformation school for juvenile delinquents and orphans, run by priests who are no less cruel and sadist than the Nazi "kapos." Bitter, Tanguy believes they are worse than the Nazis because these priests hide their sadism behind the facade of religion and confession, but that makes their sin no less. He succeeds in escaping along with a "companion," but is forced to separate from his as well. This time around, he finds himself in a school run by a group of priests but unlike the reformation school, here, Tanguy is able to grow, learn and live comfortably. It is here, that he truly flourishes and finds friends and solace. But he is still not compl etely at peace and sets off again in search of the parents who had abandoned and forsaken him to such a bitter destiny. He does find them eventually, but only to realise that the years of hardship and horror experienced by him have built an impenetrable barrier between them. He is no longer a left wing radical like them. He has learned not to hate the capos. Don't get mad get even. LOL.
ellauri210.html on line 800: C’est que dieu constipé depuis vingt siècles n’a pl us de boueux 2 vuosituhatta ummessa olleella Jumalalla ei ole enää lokaista
ellauri210.html on line 802: et les prêtres ne vendangeaient pl us que leur propre crottin Ja papit ei enää kaupitellet muuta kuin omaa kökköään
ellauri210.html on line 807: Lorsque vos oreilles et votre nez se rempl iront de boue Kun korvanne ja nenänne täyttyy loasta
ellauri210.html on line 812: dieu est pl us grand que notre fesse Jumala on suurempi kuin valjaamme
ellauri210.html on line 823: un dieu pl us sale et pl us nu que la boue Jumalan joka on nakumpi ja likaisempi kuin loka
ellauri210.html on line 825: n’est pl us qu’un absurde et livide galet. Ei enää ole kuin absurdi maxoittunut vesikivi.
ellauri210.html on line 831: The word “Dada” brings to mind an international range of extreme modernist antics. The book’s title is something of a publicist’s misnomer. Jacques Rigaut is the only confirmed suicide among the group, and while Jacques Vache did die of a drug overdose, many, including author Michel Leiris, claimed that his death was accidental, characterized as deliberate by those aiming to enhance Vache’s cultural cache. Arthur Cravan and Julian Torma simpl y disappeared, wandering into, rather than jumping towards, the cracks of avant-garde history. Of the four only Rigaut is genuinely obsessed with themes of self-destruction.
ellauri210.html on line 837: “M. Gide,” Cravan began, “I have taken leave to call on you, though I feel myself duty bound to inform you straight off that I far prefer, for exampl e, boxing to literature.” “Literature, however, is the only terrain on which we may profitably encounter one another,” he repl ied rather dryly. Cravan thought: “He certainly lives life to the full.” We spoke about literature therefore, and he asked me the following question which must be particularly dear to him: “Which of my works have you read?" "Which of my matches have you seen?"
ellauri210.html on line 850: "Richard Cory" is a narrative poem written by Edwin Arlington Robinson. It was first published in 1897, as part of The Children of the Night, having been compl eted in July of that year; and it remains one of Robinson's most popular and anthologized poems. The poem describes a person who is wealthy, well educated, mannerly, and admired by the peopl e in his town. Despite all this, he takes his own life.
ellauri210.html on line 867: Il épouse Gladys Barber le 15 janvier 1926, mais elle le quitte rapidement, lassée de sa toxicomanie. De pl us en pl us esclave de l'héroïne et de l'alcool, il vit misérablement à New York jusqu’en novembre 1928, date à laquelle il revient subitement en France et reprend une vie mondaine dans une maison prêtée par le surréaliste Paul Chadourne.
ellauri210.html on line 871: Après avoir passé une soirée à Paris avec un vieil ami, Jacques Porel, le matin du 6 novembre 1929 Jacques Rigaut rentre à Châtenay-Malabry, où il se suicide d’une balle de revolver tirée en pl ein cœur.
ellauri210.html on line 888: Ce cadavre exquis, écrit à six mains, date sans doute de 1926. On le suppose rédigé lors d'une nuit arrosée au Café de Madrid à Guéthary. Dédié au « Chinois Inconnu », ce court texte multipl ie provocations et impertinences diverses.
ellauri210.html on line 891: Agence Générale du Suicide, suivi de Lord Patchogue, Je serai sérieux comme le pl aisir, Roman d'un jeune homme pauvre, Pensées et aphorismes. Voix d'encre, 2015, Montélimar.
ellauri210.html on line 894: A ginger sling with a pineappl e heart
ellauri210.html on line 915: Jacques Prévert s'ennuie à l'école et fait souvent l'école buissonnière en parcourant Paris avec la compl icité de son père. Dès 15 ans, après son certificat d'études primaires, il abandonne les études. Il multipl ie alors les petits travaux, notamment au grand magasin Le Bon Marché. Il fait quelques larcins et fréquente des voyous mais n'est jamais inquiété par la police.
ellauri210.html on line 934: laissez les étoiles de mer sortir si ça leur pl aît la nuit
ellauri210.html on line 937: laissez passer le café si ça lui fait pl aisir
ellauri210.html on line 942: les petits veaux abandonnées pl eurent comme des veaux abandonnés
ellauri210.html on line 948: laissez les étoiles de mer sortir si ça leur pl aît la nui
ellauri210.html on line 990: Tää on hyvä runo, täst mie piän. En 1929, pl usieurs de ses poèmes paraissent dans des revues — en 1931, Tentative de description d'un dîner de têtes à Paris-France est remarqué dans le milieu littéraire.
ellauri210.html on line 991: En 1932, à l'initiative du communiste Paul Vaillant-Couturier, Jacques Prévert est sollicité par le groupe Octobre pour écrire des textes contestataires d’agitation-propagande. Sa verve, son humour, son aisance à rédiger très rapidement sur des sujets d’actualité brûlants, font la notoriété du groupe. Le pl us célèbre de ces textes, La Bataille de Fontenoy, présenté en 1933 aux Olympiades internationales du théâtre ouvrier à Moscou, devant Staline), se moque des hommes politiques de l’époque.
ellauri210.html on line 992: À l'été 1932, la troupe est invitée à Moscou d'où Jacques Prévert ne revient pas militant communiste. Toute sa vie, Jacques Prévert témoigne d'un engagement politique sincère. Surréaliste inclassable, certains observateurs n'hésitent pourtant pas à l'apparenter au courant libertaire : anarchiste de cœur, Prévert se dit « rêveur » ou « artisan » pl utôt que « poète ».
ellauri210.html on line 994: Le style joyeusement iconoclaste de Prévert et ses thèmes de prédilection, les bonheurs simpl es, la révolte et l’amour, séduisent autant le cercle de Saint-Germain-des-Prés que le grand public.
ellauri210.html on line 997: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
ellauri210.html on line 1009: Dans ce temps là, la vie était pl us belle, Kuin ikävyys niin kauniin muiston Siihen aikaan oli elämäkin kauniimpi,
ellauri210.html on line 1010: Et le soleil pl us brûlant qu'aujourd'hui. Voi synnyttää vaik' suru jää Ja aurinko polttavampi kuin on nyt.
ellauri210.html on line 1055: ploads5.wikiart.org/images/salvador-dali/the-enigma-of-hitler.jpg!Large.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri210.html on line 1123: She later married Emerico Weisz (nicknamed "Chiki"), born in Hungary in 1911. Chiki Weisz died 17 January 2007, at home. He was 97 years old. Together they had two sons: Gabriel, an intellectual and poet, and Pablo, a doctor and Surrealist artist. Leonora Carrington died on 25 May 2011, aged 94, in a hospital in Mexico City as a result of compl ications arising from pneumonia. In 2015, Carrington was honoured through a Google Doodle commemorating her 98th birthday.
ellauri210.html on line 1125: ploads7.wikiart.org/images/leonora-carrington/the-last-fish-1974.jpg!PinterestSmall.jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri210.html on line 1126: ploads7.wikiart.org/images/leonora-carrington/i-want-to-be-an-insect-1960.jpg!PinterestSmall.jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri210.html on line 1131: ploads/pohadka.jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri210.html on line 1142: Γεννήθηκε το 1920 στην Κωνσταντινούπολη και μετανάστευσε με την οικογένειά της στην Γαλλία στην ηλικία των δύο χρόνων. Υπάρχουν ελάχιστες πληροφορίες σχετικά με τη ζωή της. La famille Prassinos fuit Constantinopl e et les persécutions que subissent alors les Grecs et s'installe à Nanterre en 1922. D'origine grecque par son père et italienne par sa mère, Gisèle Prassinos est la jeune sœur du peintre Mario Prassinos. Ο αδερφός της, Μάριο Πράσινος ήταν Γάλλος καλλιτέχνης και εικονογράφος. Ο πατέρας της διηύθυνε το περιοδικό «Λόγος» στην Κωνσταντινούπολη. Ο άντρας της, Πέτρος Φρυδάς μετέφρασε στα γαλλικά Καζαντζάκη.
ellauri210.html on line 1150: Au cours de la guerre et jusqu'à la fin des années 1950, elle cesse de publier. Elle travaille dans des crèches, et co-traduit avec son mari Pierre Fridas pl usieurs livres de Níkos Kazantzákis comme Alexis Zorba ou La Liberté ou la mort. Elle se remet ensuite à écrire, des poèmes et des romans, en opposition avec l'orthodoxie surréaliste. Ces textes sont toutefois inclassables. Brelin le frou, ou le portrait de famille (1975) décrit des personnages vivant selon des règles fantaisistes. Sur les dessins de l'auteur, ils ont la particularité de porter une coiffe à l'image de leur sexe. Les nouvelles de Mon cœur les écoute (1982) font montre d'un humour poétique proche de celui d'Henri Michaux ou de Joyce Mansour. Elle est également connue pour ses dessins et ses « tentures », des œuvres pl astiques réalisées à l'aide de morceaux de tissu de couleur découpés.
ellauri210.html on line 1165:
Jean-Pierre Duprey (1 January 1930 in Rouen – 2 October 1959 in Paris) was a French poet and sculptor, one of the modern exampl es of a poète maudit (accursed poet).
ellauri210.html on line 1167: Dès l'âge de quinze ans, Jean-Pierre Duprey compose ses premiers poèmes. Il part pour Paris en 1948 sur l'invitation d'André Breton et participe au mouvement surréaliste. Au cours de l'été 1948, il rencontre, en Normandie, Jacqueline Sénart qui deviendra sa femme et partagera sa vie jusqu'à la fin. Il figure sur les photographies du groupe surréaliste prises par Man Ray en 1953 au café de la pl ace Blanche[réf. nécessaire]. Näistä Brétonin loppupään kirotuista oppilaista tulee vähän mieleen Jaakko Hintikka ja sen sekundaoppilaiden sukupolvet: L. Carlson, E. Saarinen, Mike Hand, Gabriel Sandu.
ellauri210.html on line 1173: Three days before his death, he said calmly to a friend: "I am allergic to this pl anet". He wrote his final book in 1959 and upon compl etion, he asked his wife to send the manuscript to Breton. When she returned from the post office, she found him dead; he had hanged himself on the main beam of his studio. Another exit in the style of David Foster Wallace. Did he give a damn to how his wife might have taken it? Well maybe she was relieved. Asta is allergic to Miryam's kitty Chico but bears it, taking antihistamines. When she has had a bad day, she curls up in her room with Kitty in her lap.
ellauri210.html on line 1187: Dépl oyé dans le sens Käytettynä merkityxessä
ellauri210.html on line 1188: Du pl us profond qui s’ouvre sur lui-même Syvimmässä joka aukee izelleen
ellauri210.html on line 1222: La Rochefoucauld a dit qu’il y a dans le malheur de notre meilleur ami quelque chose qui ne nous dépl aît pas. Tästäkin osuvasta ajatelmasta Rabbe veti herneen nenään.
ellauri210.html on line 1226: The French essayist Michel Eyquem de Montaigne’s famous tome Les Essais became celebrated in its age, even being quoted by William Shakespeare in The Tempest. At the core of the collection of writings was “De l’amitie” (“On Friendship”). La Boetie enjoyed a certain level of fame, achieved through political discourses, when he met Montaigne around 1557 and the two would spend four years together, at which time the principl es of civil disobedience in matters of love became instilled in Montaigne, according to Robert Aldrich and Garry Wotherspoon’s Who’s Who in Gay and Lesbian History. But La Boetie would succumb to the pl ague, and Montaigne would write that he never experienced such love again.
ellauri210.html on line 1248: Shaw kirjoitti sanan rakkaus lainausmerkkeihin, koska sukupuolten väliset suhteet tarkoittivat hänelle sukupuolten taistelua ja usein molempien osapuolten tyytymättömyyttä. Hänellä oli useita enemmän tai vähemmän pl atonisia rakkaussuhteita esimerkiksi näyttelijättäriin Ellen Terryyn ja mrs. Patrick Campbelliin.
ellauri210.html on line 1250: George Shaw, known at his insistence as Bernard Shaw, was an Irish pl aywright, critic, polemicist and political activist. His influence on the Western hemisphefre, culture and politics extended from the 1880s to his death and beyond. He wrote more than sixty pl ays, including major works such as Man and Superman (1902), Pygmalion (1913) and Saint Joan (1923). With a range incorporating both contemporary satire and historical allegory, Pshaw became the leading dramatist of his generation, and in 1925 was awarded the Nobel Prize in Literature.
ellauri210.html on line 1263: In the final decade of his life, Shaw declared that "until the Federation of the World becomes an accompl ished fact we must accept the most responsible Imperial federations (the anglo saxons) as a substitute for it".
ellauri210.html on line 1266: The fellow-writer H. G. Wells had joined the "vet Fabian' society in February 1903. Wells's ideas for reform—particularly his proposals for closer cooperation with the Independent Labour Party—pl aced him at odds with the society's "Old Gang", led by Shaw. In Shaw's view, "the Old Gang did not extinguish Mr Wells, he annihilated himself".
ellauri210.html on line 1268: In 1938 he provided the screenpl ay for a filmed version of Pygmalion for which he received an Academy Award. He died, aged ninety-four, having refused all state honours, except the Nobel prize and the Oscar.
ellauri210.html on line 1272: Shaw was born at 3 Upper Synge Street in Portobello, a lower-middle-class part of Dublin. The Shaw family was of English descent and belonged to the dominant Protestant Ascendancy in Ireland. George Carr Shaw, Bernir's dad, an ineffectual alcoholic, was among the family's less successful members. By the time of Shaw's birth, his mother had become close to George John Lee, a flamboyant figure well known in Dublin's musical circles. Shaw retained a lifelong obsession that Lee might have been his biological father. Shaw made a negligible income from writing, and was subsidised by Lee pl us his mother. In 1881, for the sake of economy, and as a matter of principl e, he became a vegetarian. He grew a beard to hide a facial scar left by smallpox.
ellauri210.html on line 1279: According to the trivia section here at IMDB, "George Bernard Shaw adamantly opposed any notion that Higgins and Eliza had fallen in love and would marry at the end of the pl ay, as he felt it would betray the character of Eliza who, as in the myth of Pygmalion and Galatea, would "come to life" and emancipate herself from the male domination of Higgins and her father. He even went so far as to include a lengthy essay to be published with copies of the script expl aining precisely why Higgins and Eliza would never marry, and what "actually happened" after the curtain fell: Eliza married Freddy and opened a flower shop with funds from Colonel Pickering. Moreover, as Shaw biographers have noted, Higgins is meant to be an analogue of the pl aywright himself, thus suggesting Higgins was actually a homosexual." Eliza, where are my slippers?
ellauri210.html on line 1298: El surrealismo nos situó ante el éxito de la estética de lo feo frente al fracaso de la belleza convencional y manida. Aglutinar el pánico, la tortura, el sufrimiento, lo indecible etc., nos permite encontrar una experiencia estética en todo ello. La categoría estética de lo feo nos conduce a una catarsis en la que se manifiestan nuestros sentimientos más profundos y nos permite tener conciencia pl ena de lo real.
ellauri210.html on line 1312: The last sentence of the book ("Beauty will be CONVULSIVE or will not be at all") provided the title for Pierre Boulez's flute concerto ...expl osante-fixe....
ellauri210.html on line 1316: The narrator, randomly named André, ruminates on a number of Surrealist principl es, before ultimately commencing (around a third of the way through the novel) on a narrative account, generally linear, of his brief ten-day affair with the titular character Nadja. She is so named “because in Russian it's the beginning of the word hope, and because it's only the beginning,” but her name might also evoke the Spanish "Nadie," which means "No one." The narrator becomes obsessed with this woman with whom he, upon a chance encounter while walking through the street, strikes up conversation immediately. He becomes reliant on daily rendezvous, occasionally culminating in romance (a kiss here and there). His true fascination with Nadja, however, is her vision of the world, which is often provoked through a discussion of the work of a number of Surrealist artists, including himself. While her understanding of existence subverts the rigidly authoritarian quotidian, it is later discovered that she is mad and belongs in a sanitarium. After Nadja reveals too many details of her past life, she in a sense becomes demystified, and the narrator realizes that he cannot continue their relationship.
ellauri210.html on line 1320: Alejadas de la maternidad y de casi todo aquello que les da la entidad de mujer, tanto Mansour como Prassinos saben que la “femme-enfant” es algo más que un bello objeto para admirar. Estas autoras desarrollan un concepto de belleza, de sexo y género difuminados, donde entra en juego la noción de identidad y alteridad. Así mismo impl ica una idea de subversión femenina que se aleja definitivamente del concepto bretoniano de la mujer.
ellauri210.html on line 1322: Para las dos escritoras la pulsión de amor y muerte será necesaria y la pl asmarán cada una a su manera, pero coincidirán en el pensamiento que Murielle Gagnebin retoma de Bataille: “L’essence de l’érotisme est la souillure” (Gagnebin, 1994) y es que no hay belleza ni erotismo sin mácula. Sobre todo Joyce Mansour quien seduce con personajes de inclinaciones sadomasoquistas y pulsiones sangrientas.
ellauri210.html on line 1323: En el caso de Prassinos se distinguen dos periodos, el de su adolescencia y el de una época más tardía. En su imaginario adolescente impl ica motivos típicos de los cuentos de hadas.
ellauri210.html on line 1327: De esta forma, el universo de estas mujeres está poblado de un bestiario que crea un repertorio estético compl ejo, que se prolonga como algo negativo en general, como una transgresión de la moral y de las normas.
ellauri210.html on line 1329: Gisèle Prassinos comparte con Mansour una revisión del compl ejo de Edipo, donde matricidios, parricidios y castraciones simbólicas se suceden continuamente. La madre aparece en los relatos, como un leitmotiv, muere o está alienada por la desgracia o la locura. Los personajes desarrollan una relación de dependencia hacia ella, entrando en territorios edípicos. La madre se configura como una pieza clave en el entramado psicológico de estos personajes, casi siempre débiles, deformes, desamparados, las madres ponen en marcha el compl ejo de castración.
ellauri210.html on line 1332: tence dans le monde de Prassinos”. El miedo a la separación de la madre los convierte en seres débiles, sujetos eternamente al compl ejo de Edipo, suspendidos en sus particulares “bizarreries”, ayudan al desarrollo de la historia en un tono naïf y amable. Estos compl ejos parecen parar el tiempo para jugar con la impresión de que estamos ante personajes sin edad.
ellauri210.html on line 1334: En Prassinos también funciona el compl ejo inverso, como el relato “Vanda et le Parasite” [1] que ofrece una original lectura sobre el padre castrador. El padre, al nacer coloca un gusano sobre los cabellos de Vanda. Este acto será valorado como una metáfora del miedo a la autoridad masculina, empl eando los términos de Barnet “cannibalisée par l’autorité patriarcale”.
ellauri210.html on line 1338: Joyce Mansour se podría definir como “abyecto”, retomando la definición de Julia Kristeva, (Kristeva, 1980) sería “el objeto caído”. El universo mansouriano seduce con sus seres desviados, se metamorfosea en monstruo o animal, casi siempre asociados a los animales que más repulsión suscitan, pero que a la vez se convierte en modelo de seducción, retomando el término de Barnet sería una “anti-seducción” un “ bestiaire pour dépl aire”.
ellauri210.html on line 1344: Gisèle Prassinos también nos ha dejado unas buenas dosis de personajes desordenados, donde afloran ciertas desviaciones. En ese “collage” entre cuentos de hadas y aromas baudelerianos, la autora jugará sobre todo con la metamorfosis, así sus mujeres “pseudo-femmes castratrices” se transforman en animales o en seres extraños, fantásticos. Prassinos ataca a los mitos del psicoanálisis, muestra imágenes híbridas, animales que se convierten en hombre, objetos que se convierten en animales, etc. Destaca la hostilidad hacia la figura autoritaria del padre. Nos habla de venganzas mediante el asesinato, los cuerpos difuntos son despedazados o transformados, dejando traslucir sentimientos intensos, donde se perfila la imagen de la muerte y se exorciza el miedo. La misma autora confesaba en una entrevista personal la distancia que había entre ella y su padre, destacando la importancia que tiene la figura masculina en las culturas orientales, sensación que refleja en el cuento “La Tête” (op. cit., 1987): “Lucas vit qu’entre elle et son père s’ouvrait un écart pl us large que ceux qui séparaient les autres personnes”.
ellauri210.html on line 1346: Prassinos, heredera de los cuentos tradicionales de hadas contamina su imaginario con personajes desviados, transformándolos en “contes bizarres”. En un marco irreal, típico de los cuentos surrealistas juega con las metamorfosis: objetos que adquieren dimensión animal, humanos que se animalizan, animales que se transforman en humanos, o personas que se reapropian de otras, como muestran algunos de sus cuentos, como “la Psyché” donde la protagonista sufre por parte de otra mujer una apropiación de su voluntad, de su personalidad, llegando a ser su doble. Como en el estadio del espejo de Lacan, la protagonista reacciona al contempl ar su imagen, no ante el espejo, sino ante la otra mujer: “Nous étions pl us que jumelles et nous nous regardions subjuguées, chacune dans le miroir humain que lui tendait l’autre”.
ellauri210.html on line 1350: En Prassinos opera cierta actitud parasitaria, ya lo vimos en le cuento de “Vanda le parasite” y también está presente en el juego de supl antaciones de los relatos comentados. Usando el término de Barnet, los personajes de Gisèle Prassinos se ven “canibalizados”, poseídos por otros seres, impidiendo su desarrollo normal.
ellauri210.html on line 1352: Supone una alteración y deformación de lo que uno es, sólo que en estos casos el extrañamiento no viene frente a la sociedad o frente a otros individuos, sino que los protagonistas son alienados por otra persona que deviene su propio “yo”, actuando a modo de espejo. Actuando como dupl icados de uno mismo, solo que el “yo” inicial queda anulado por el segundo. Se aproxima a la escisión del “yo” entendida bajo los términos de Lacan. La alienación viene dada por su imagen en el espejo, en este caso en ese “otro” (algo ajeno a él). El “yo” está alienado porque se reconoce en algo que no es. Esta pérdida de identidad en Gisèle Prassinos también se ve reflejada en el juego de sexos, procede a despistar con los sexos como hace Mansour.
ellauri210.html on line 1357: Al igual que Mansour, en Prassinos casi siempre interviene la madre. En Mansour se hace evidente en el dolor constante, toda su poesía está repl eta de alusiones a la madre, al sufrimiento de perderla. En Prassinos, sin embargo se convierte en personaje familiar que tiende a desaparecer y luego a materializarse en otro ser. Esta transformación impl ica la materialización de la madre en otro ser, en una especie de reencarnación o posesión, la madre no sólo se convierte en otro ser, sino que además cambia de sexo.
ellauri210.html on line 1359: A pesar de todo, Gisèle Prassinos nos sumerge en un imaginario que nos recuerda a los cuentos clásicos con ciertas afinidades próximas a Nathalie Sarraute y a Baudelaire. Aunque los personajes sean dementes tenemos la impresión de estar ante seres inofensivos, llenos de ternura. La belleza en Prassinos nunca es expl icita, se centra en destacar los debilidades que terminan por dar coherencia al relato.
ellauri210.html on line 1360: El monstruo es un ser compl ejo, no banal, que nos hace obtener resultados de nuestro yo profundo y oscuro, impl ica mutaciones pero también continuidades de sentido. Monsters have an interesting life, they don't work from 9 to 5. La subversion des images inattendues du corps féminin, sénile ou malade, se trouve particulièrment troublante chez Prassinos et Mansour. Como vemos, las dos autoras se sirven de un imaginario sórdido para expresar aquello que les duele.
ellauri210.html on line 1368: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/8/89/Photo_of_Joyce_Mansour.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri210.html on line 1378: Mansour’s first published collection of poems, titled: Cris, was published in Paris in 1953 by Pierre Seghers. This collection of work references male and female anatomy in expl icit language that was unusual for the time. Religious language can also be found. However, it is inverted, repl acing what would be Christ with the lover. References of Egyptian mythology are also present in Cris. Mansour references the White Goddess as well as Hathor.
ellauri210.html on line 1380: In 1954, Joyce Mansour became involved with the surrealist movement after Jean-Louise Bédouin wrote a review praising Cris in Médium: Communication surréaliste that May. Joyce Mansour actively participated in the second wave of surrealism in Paris. Her apartment was a popular meeting pl ace for members of the surrealist group. L'exécution du testament du Marquis de Sade, the performance piece by Jean Benoît took pl ace in Mansour’s apartment, where she "collaborated" with obscure minor representatives such as Pierre Alechinsky, Enrico Baj, Hans Bellmer, Gerardo Chávez, Jorge Camacho, Ted Joans, Pierre Molinier, Reinhoud d'Haese and Max Walter Svanberg.
ellauri211.html on line 34:
Lukijan Ruoansulatus play:none">Naurua
ellauri211.html on line 44: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/0f/First_issue_of_the_Reader%27s_Digest%2C_February_1922.png" style="float:left;width:20%;padding:1em" />
ellauri211.html on line 46: Kalutut Palat on lyömätön vessalukemisto. Lyhkäiselläkin käynnillä tyhjän päällä ehtii lukea sen vizipalstat. Se täytti tänä vuonna sata vuotta. Vuonna 1999 europalat lisensioitiin jollekin euroyrityxelle. Kävi kuin Don Duckille, josta tuli Anders And. Se on vieläkin Suomen suurilevikkisin lehti. Paskahuusseja on vielä koko maaseutu täynnä, vaikka niiden tulevaisuus on nyt uhattuna. (Paizi ne tekee toisen tulemisen muovisina sisävessoina.) Omistuxen vaihtuessa "Posetiivari" Rothien naapurista sai kenkää Kalutuista Paloista, kun kaikki pohjoismaiset kalutut siirrettiin yhdelle johtajalle. Eipä enää uzi Wolframilta, pitkäkö sillä on jäykkänä, saako sekin 30 kilomarkkaa kuussa pl us bonuxet. Posetiivari ei menettänyt posetiivisuuttaan, vaikka menetti työpaikan, talonpuolikkaan, vaimon sekä tyttären, vaan alkoi myydä izeään postimyynnissä.
ellauri211.html on line 117: Japan and many peopl e and industries are now being moved there as
ellauri211.html on line 120: Japan and the peopl e there are more apt to appreciate the
ellauri211.html on line 148: During this time, the Imperial Japanese army killed between 40,000 and 300,000 peopl e. This admittedly inexact number is the total number of civilians and soldiers killed.
ellauri211.html on line 167: Nagasakin yllä 9. elokuuta 1945 räjäytetty pommi (Fat Man) oli täysin toisenlainen, sillä siinä käytettiin fissioituvana aineena pl utoniumia. Tämäntyyppinen pommi oli jo kerran räjäytetty 16. heinäkuuta Trinity-kokeessa New Mexicossa. Pommi painoi 4 545 kiloa, ja se pudotettiin Bockscar-nimisestä B-29-koneesta, jota ohjasi majuri Charles Sweeney. Pommin teho oli noin 20 kilotonnia ja räjähdyskorkeus sama 550 metriä. Pommi räjähti kello 11.02 (JST). Nagasakin mäkisen maaston ansiosta tuhovaikutus jäi valitettavasti jonkin verran Hiroshimaa pienemmäksi, mutta pommi tappoi noin 73 900 ihmistä. Pommituksissa käytettiin juuri B-29 Superfortress -pommikoneita, koska ainoastaan ne kykenivät lentämään Mariaaneilta Japaniin ja takaisin. Pudotuskorkeus oli aiempaa alempi (jopa noin 0,5 kilometriä), sillä se oli 8 800 metriä.
ellauri211.html on line 173: Hiroshiman ja Nagasakin pommit näyttivät, miten voimakas ase atomipommi on: yksi pommikone kykeni tuhoamaan kokonaisen kaupungin, kun siihen aiemmin tarvittiin satojen koneiden hyökkäys ja jopa yli 20 prosentin kalusto- ja miehistötappiot sitä suoritettaessa. Body count lie ollut noin 200 000, mutta pl us-puolelle on laskettava että ne oli 100% viirusilmiä.
ellauri211.html on line 202: Le grand ennemi de l´art, c´est le bon goût. Le goût est une source de pl aisir, l´art n´est pas une source de pl aisir, c´est une source qui n´a pas de couleur, pas de goût. L´art est une chose beaucoup pl us profonde que le goût d´une époque. Je me suis forcé à me contredire pour éviter de me conformer à mon propre goût. Je suis dégoutant, et ca me goute.
ellauri211.html on line 299: Katri Helena ja Panu Rajala olivat naimisissa vuodesta 1997 vuoteen 2004. Toissavuotisessa Katri Helena -musikaalissa Panu Rajala tuotiin kirjailijan mukaan esiin varsin kyseenalaisessa valossa. Panu Rajalaa ei musikaalissa kutsuttu hänen oikealla sukunimellään, vaan miehestä käytettiin leikkisää nimitystä Proffa. Musikaalissa Proffa liehitteli muita naisia eikä ollut vaimonsa tukena, mikä teki laulajan surulliseksi. Rakkaus rakoili nopeasti. Musikaalista kiukustuneena kirjoittamassaan paljastuskirjassa Rajala sanoo tuovansa kostoxi Katri Helenasta esiin arkisemman puolen. - Tässä tulee ehkä hieman inhimillisiä kosketuksia ja yksityiskohtia, jotka liittyvät tarinan kulkuun ja tähän draaman kaareen. Halusin tuoda joitakin inhimillisiä, arkisempia ja tavallisempia piirteitä tähän hyvin kiillotettuun tähtikuvaan. Koska hän on ollut suuren ihailun vallassa (sic) vuosikymmeniä, niin kyllä siihen liittyy vähän muutakin. Ajattelin, että teen palveluksen tuleville elämäkerran kirjoittajille antamalla tällaista läheltä nähtyä aineistoa, Rajala kertoi. Lavalla nähtiin rajuja riitoja, joissa kummatkin käyttivät kovaa kieltä toisistaan. Katri syytti Proffaa julkisuudenkipeäksi ja kaksinaamaiseksi liehittelijäksi, Proffa puolestaan haukkui Katria henkien kanssa seurustelevaksi haahuilijaksi. Kaikki repl iikit oli poimittu naistenlehdistä. Ranua esittänyt hemmo tuntee esittämänsä henkilön myös todellisuudessa, he ovat tehneet yhteistyötä. Toivon, että Panu Rajala suhtautuu tähän huumorilla, Katri sanoi. Ranu on tollanen Suomen Bellow, Roth tai Knasu, kaunainen narsisti. Panu Rajala harmistui syksyllä 2010 ensi-iltansa saaneesta Katri Helena -musikaalista, koska hänet esitettiin siinä epämieluisassa valossa. Rajala oli musikaalissa Proffa, joka esitettiin suorastaan pellenä, lukeneisuudellaan pröystäilevänä hienostelijana. Panu alkoi panna Marjaa Katrin selän takana. Panu Rajala ja Marja Norha vihittiin Sastamalan vanhassa kirkossa 2007. Panu Rajalan ei tarvitse piilotella sivistyneisyyttään nykyisen vaimovainajansa kanssa. Hän on opettaja! Tai siis oli, ei sekään kestänyt kovaa käyttöä.
ellauri213.html on line 34:
EMBOTELLADO play:none">Taikamatuja
ellauri213.html on line 35: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/b/b7/Encanto_juliste.jpg/250px-Encanto_juliste.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri213.html on line 41: Taneli Kivipukin nahaton kalu huojuu jäykkänä kaverin päästyä ulos housuista alta aikayxikön. Tina Herzberg, mantelisilmäinen nähtävästi sekin, huokailee altavastaajana. "Pian mies oli alasti ja penis seisoi." Snart blottades ollonet. Nääh, det var ju blottat från första början. "Hiän näki ensi kertaa (LOL) miehen lujan penixen ja tunsi kostuvansa." Kiinalainen huora oli kauniimpi kuin kuolema mutta Taneli ei vääränrotuiselle luovuttanut Israelin siementä. Se sai vaan hifistellä ohuen polyesterin läpi Tanelin ståkukia. Rikollisen keskustelun ja pöydänalushipl auxen jälkeen Tanelilla seisoi yhä. Kinkku hoiteli jo nuijaa seuraavaa. Gimmelin alkup vedos 20v takaa on parempi kuin Ripsipiirakan 13v takainen säälittävä coveri.
ellauri213.html on line 62: Dma-lapset eivät tunne häpeää eivätkä ole ylpeitä. Se on hyvin paha. Häpeä on peitettävä siionistien verellä. Isä olisi ylpeä kameleontistaan. Kunnia on pelastettava. Sählämit GT ja ilman kärhämöivät silmittömästi arvottomasta maapalasta. Public displ ays of aggression. Dan on erittäinkin kyyninen. Venäläiset ovat pahoja. Kuubalaiset hoitavat likaisen työn KGBn puolesta. Danilla on likainen mielikuvitus. Dankin paistatteli mielellään kameroiden loisteessa kuin Ranu Pajala. Mikähän siinä oikein viehättää? Kysy peipolta. Ja kysynkin. Se vastaa: lähtee hereästi pillua. Vanha Dan on vanhan jutkun näköinen. Siitä tuli konsulentti, globalisaation agentti. Aziz the combat fighter söi epähuomiossa sikanautapurilaisia. Ei olis kannattanut.
ellauri213.html on line 64: VIDEO
ellauri213.html on line 66: En varmaan ole koskaan kuullut Kari Tapion kappaletta Olen suomalainen, enkä sen jonkun ämmän, oisko Paula joku, "piisiä" Aikuinen nainen. Niihin pl us Jukka Kuoppamäen em. kappaleeseen tiivistyy tsuhnalainen turvelous. Syrjän kerrotaan sanoneen tv-haastattelussa, että teksti on "ihan paskaa". Oikeaan osunut arvio.
ellauri213.html on line 115: Samaan aikaan Etupepan kyky hallita säätä kasvatti hänessä tarvetta tukahduttaa tunteitaan luonnonkatastrofien estämiseksi, mikä ei ole terveellistä kuten näemme Greta Thunbergista ja Brunosta. Samanlaista erityisherkkyyttä näemme hänen lapsissaan. Dolores (Avalokitasvara) joka kuulee kaiken, on jatkuvasti tietoinen siitä, mitä muut ihmiset sanovat ja on siksi jatkuvasti varuillaan kaiken disinformaation vuoksi, jota hänellä on käytettävissään. Hänen veljeänsä isä Camiloa voidaan pitää myös tunne-elämän tukahduttajana, koska hän pystyy mukautumaan fyysisesti (5-15 cm, 25 jos olet taitava) ja emotionaalisesti vastataxeen muiden tarpeisiin. Se ei ole terveellistä, on tärkeää olla terveen egoistinen, let it cum kun on tullaxeen. Kauppatieteen käyneet liikejohtajat pihistävät palkoista osakkeenomistajan hyväxi. Palkat on niille vain kuluerä. Tää leffa on erittäinkin matriarkaalinen. Miesrooleissa ukkivainaja, läski neekeri, isä (ruipelo), teini muodonmuuttaja, "el Chapo", tärähtänyt homo setä, pl us eläimiä hätyyttävä vintiö.
ellauri213.html on line 118: VIDEO
ellauri213.html on line 172: P.S. Mitä Bruno teki väärin? Bruno tells someone when their pl anet is going to die, or when they are going to go extinct, for which they inappropriately blame him.
ellauri213.html on line 180: not identify with other children and will have a compl ete
ellauri213.html on line 187: forepl ay.
ellauri213.html on line 201: ploads/2020/07/What-are-demands-Julia2.jpg.png?resize=768%2C541&ssl=1" />
ellauri213.html on line 204: Let’s first look at direct demands. Direct demands are requests or questions made by other peopl e or situations – such as ‘put your shoes on’, ‘sit here and wait’, ‘pay this bill’ or ‘would you like a drink?’. In addition to these more obvious direct demands, there’s a whole raft of indirect and internal demands, including:
ellauri213.html on line 208: Plans – advance pl anning may lead to increased anxiety as the time/date for ‘the pl an’ nears, but equally the intolerance of uncertainty that is a key factor in PDA may make ‘spur of the moment’ activities tricky …
ellauri213.html on line 220: Praise – this carries the impl ied expectation that the action will be carried out again or improved on next time, and so may not achieve the positive reinforcement that may be intended
ellauri213.html on line 228: Other peopl e’s ‘energy’ and presence
ellauri213.html on line 233: Then there are demands within demands – the smaller impl ied demands within larger demands (for exampl e, within the demand of going to the cinema are the demands of remaining seated, responding appropriately, sitting next to other peopl e you don’t know, being quiet etc. etc.).
ellauri213.html on line 242: We believe that peopl e have the right to find their own solution and that telling peopl e what to do takes responsibility away from them.
ellauri213.html on line 243: Augustine and Thomas Aquinas had formulated the view that whoever deliberately took away the life given to them by their Creator showed the utmost disregard for the will and authority of God and jeopardized their salvation, encouraging the Church to treat suicide as a sin. By the early 1960s, however, the Church of England was re-evaluating its stance on the legality of suicide, and decided that counselling, psychotherapy and suicide prevention intervention before the event took pl ace would be a better solution than criminalisation of what amounted to an act of despair in this context.
ellauri213.html on line 244: The Suicide Act 1961 (9 & 10 Eliz 2 c 60) is an Act of the Parliament of the United Kingdom. It decriminalised the act of suicide in England and Wales so that those who kill themselves would no longer be prosecuted. The Act did not appl y to Scotland, as suicide was never an offence under Scots Law.
ellauri213.html on line 246: The standing adjudication in English common law is that, as dying is an inevitable consequence of life, the right to life under the Convention necessarily impl ies the obligation to let nature take its course. Everyone has the right to die slowly, painfully and horribly.
ellauri213.html on line 251: You join together with thousands of other members for a set programme reflective of the host country’s culture and customs. As well as a huge closing ceremony. This event is for members aged 16 to 22. Sadly the next World Scout Moot in 2022 has been cancelled, but we hope this will take pl ace again in 2025. We hiked, swam, expl ored one another and ate our shorts becoming really great friends. Learned how to give support during the Ukraine conflict. The 25th World Scout Jamboree will take pl ace in 2023 in South Korea. Lieköhän yhtään venäläisiä kaukopartiolaisia kuzuttujen joukossa?
ellauri213.html on line 254: In 1908, Baden-Powell's book Scouting for Boys came out in Russia by the order of Tsar Nicholas II. It was called Young Scout (Юный Разведчик, Yuny Razvedchik). On April 30 [O.S. April 17] 1909, a young officer, Colonel Oleg Pantyukhov, organized the first Russian Scout troop Beaver (Бобр, Bobr) in Pavlovsk, a town near Tsarskoye Selo, St. Petersburg region. In 1910, Baden-Powell visited Nicholas II in Tsarskoye Selo and they had a very pl easant conversation, as the Tsar remembered it. In 1914, Pantyukhov established a society called Russian Scout (Русский Скаут, Russkiy Skaut). The first Russian Scout campfire was lit in the woods of Pavlovsk Park in Tsarskoye Selo. A Russian Scout song exists to remember this event. Scouting spread rapidly across Russia and into Siberia, and by 1916, there were about 50,000 Scouts in Russia. Nicholas' son Tsarevich Aleksei was a Scout himself.
ellauri213.html on line 258: In Soviet Russia the Scouting system started to be repl aced by ideologically-altered Scoutlike organizations, such as "ЮК" ("Юные Коммунисты", or young communists; pronounced as yuk), that were created since 1918. There was a purge of the Scout leaders, many of whom perished under the Bolsheviks. Those Scouts who did not wish to accept the new Soviet system either left Russia for good, like Pantyukhov and others, or went underground. However, clandestine Scouting did not last long. On May 19, 1922 all of those newly created organizations were united into the Young Pioneer organization of the Soviet Union, which existed until 1990. From that date, Scouting in the USSR was banned.
ellauri213.html on line 260: However, some features of Scouting remained in the modified form. The Scout motto "Bud' Gotov" ("Be Prepared") was modified into the Pioneer motto "Vsegda Gotov" ("Always Prepared"). Mention of God was removed, repl aced by Lenin and the Communist Party of the Soviet Union. There were no separate organizations for girls and boys, and many new features were introduced, like Young Pioneer Palaces.
ellauri213.html on line 268: Russian Scouting eventually spl it into two organizations over ideological differences. These are the modern-day National Organization of Russian Scouts (NORS) and Organization of Russian Young Pathfinders (ORYuR/ОРЮР). As neither organization was created ex nihilo, they may both be considered legitimate successors to the Русский Скаут heritage.
ellauri213.html on line 284: The Scout Motto is Будь готов (Bud' Gotov, Be Prepared in Russian. The Russian noun for a single Scout is Скаут, but can alternately be Разведчик or Навигатор depending on the organization. As Разведчик also carries the connotation of spy, now often perceived as negative in the post-Soviet period, many now refer to themselves as Скаут or Навигатор, the more neutral term for the original meaning, an advance party sent to reconnoiter the terrain, similar to pathfinder or expl orer.
ellauri213.html on line 286: Rainbows (regrettable choice of name, in hindsight) is for all girls aged four to seven (five in some areas). We pl ay loads of fun games and do activities and challenges and a few times we get badges – Matilda, Rainbow. Rainbows learn by doing – they get their panties dirty, do sports, arts and crafts and pl ay games. Being a Rainbow is all about having the space to try new things. Through taking part in a range of different activities with girls their own age, Rainbows develop self-confidence and make lots of new friends.
ellauri213.html on line 288: My daughter Nancy, who has Asperger's syndrome, has been a Rainbow for over a year and she loves it, especially as many special schools and autism youth groups are boy-dominated. Rainbows gives Nancy something shared to discuss with friends at school. It's also good for her to see girls doing all sorts of activities because boys commenting sleazily on her doing things that aren't stereotypically girly can upset her. The sleepovers are especially amazing! And it's not just Nancy who benefits. Rainbows are supported by a group of highly trained, inspirational leaders who expl ore the girls, challenge themselves and have fun.
ellauri213.html on line 291: 'Normal' festivals have too many nasty older peopl e who are so big that it hurts, but at Wellies you can do things
ellauri213.html on line 292: with peopl e your own age size and gender and feel safe. You can't get bored here. You make a lot of new friends and have a lot of freedom. It's nice having a festival for peopl e our age that our parents will let us go to!
ellauri213.html on line 294: The girls didn't know much about the event beforehand, but Amelia was most excited about sleeping with the Big Top, Meghan couldn't wait to learn some tricks, while Abigail, Darcey and Ellie were looking forward to trying out some new adventurous group activities. We then enjoyed a very funny magic show, sucking our own magic wands and balloon creatures. Darcey and Aayla said they 'liked pl aying fun games with the Rainbows on the inflatables' which we did next.
ellauri213.html on line 298: Girlguiding UK has signed the campaign to try and force the hand of Rupert Murdoch, who hinted a few weeks ago that he is considering ending the publication of photographs of topl ess models on page 3 of The Sun – which he owns, as chief executive of News Corporation. Page 3, or Page Three, was a British newspaper convention of publishing a large image of a topl ess female glamour model (known as a Page 3 girl) on the third page of mainstream red-top tabloids. The Sun introduced the feature, publishing its first topl ess Page 3 image on 17 November 1970. The Sun's sales doubled over the following year, and Page 3 is partly credited with making The Sun the UK's bestselling newspaper by 1978. In response, competing tabloids including the Daily Mirror, the Sunday Peopl e, and the Daily Star also began featuring topl ess models on their own third pages. Notable Page 3 models included Linda Lusardi, Samantha Fox, and Katie Price.
ellauri213.html on line 300: Samantha Karen Fox (born 15 April 1966) is an English pop singer and former glamour model from East London. She rose to public attention aged 16, when her mother entered her photographs in an amateur modelling contest run by The Sunday Peopl e tabloid newspaper. After she pl aced second in the contest, she received an offer from The Sun to model topl ess on Page 3, where she made her first appearance on 22 February 1983, at the tender age of 17, sporting huge balloons already then. She continued to appear on Page 3 until 1986, becoming the most popular pin-up girl of her era, as well as one of the most photographed British women of the 1980s. She looked like a fox with balloons glued up front. Never liked her face anyway.
ellauri213.html on line 304: 170 hours unpaid work and told to pay £1,500 costs. Katie Price has been known on the celebrity circuit for many years, starting out her career as a glamour model before becoming a TV personality, author and OnlyFans content creator. Katie has five children: her eldest Harvey, Princess, Junior, Buddy and Jett. She was married to Peter Andre from 2005-2009, Alex Reid from 2010-2012 and Kieran Hayler from 2013-2021. She was most recently dating Love Island star Carl Woods until their spl it. Michelle contacted Sussex Police on Friday to compl ain that Katie — mum to two of Kieran’s children — had sent him a tirade of abuse which was aimed at her. Close sources said the text branded Michelle a “c*ing w*e piece of s*” and a “gutter s*g.” The ex-glamour model, who smiled as she left the dock today, could have been jailed for a maximum of five years for breaching the restraining order. BUSINESS AS USUAL Katie Price says she’s ‘so lucky’ after dodging jail over ‘gutter s*g’ text – as she reveals she’s landed a Girlguiding travel show.
ellauri213.html on line 306: ploads/2022/06/NINTCHDBPICT000742559912.jpg?w=670" height="300px" />
ellauri213.html on line 307: ploads/2020/04/LL012_Yellow.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri213.html on line 311: The Sun ceased publishing topl ess Page 3 images in its Republic of Ireland edition in 2013, in its UK editions in 2015, and on its Page3.com website in 2017. The Daily Star also ceased publishing images of topl ess glamour models in 2019. However, these decisions were not necessarily a direct result of the No More Page 3 campaign. The then official photographer for Page 3, Alison Webster, also criticised the campaign, saying "peopl e should be able to make their own choices". Prime Minister David Cameron repl ied, "I think on this one I think it is probably better to leave it to the consumer."
ellauri213.html on line 312: In August 2013, The Sun's Republic of Ireland edition repl aced topl ess Page 3 girls with clothed glamour models. Its UK editions followed suit in January 2015, discontinuing Page 3 after more than 44 years. The Daily Star became the last print daily to drop topl ess photographs, moving to a clothed glamour format in April 2019. This ended the Page 3 convention in Britain's mainstream tabloid press. As of 2022, the only British tabloid still publishing topl ess models is the niche Sunday Sport. Only old geezers buy it anymore. Others prefer peering down the bottomless pit.
ellauri213.html on line 326: Moshe Raab will never forget, nor forgive. Mosaic God is not a forgiving one. Mosaic beer is good, unlike Foster's. Leila Khaled hijacked my and my mother's and my siblings' pl ane. Why did a public university invite her to speak? Even after 50 years, the convicted terrorist who changed my life has never disavowed her actions. What will she teach SFSU students?
ellauri213.html on line 327: ploads/2020/09/Leila-montage.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri213.html on line 329: TWA flight 741 was one of three pl anes successfully hijacked by the Popular Front for the Liberation of Palestine that day — the hijacking of an El Al pl ane was foiled by the onboard sky marshals. At the time, I was a 14-year old foreskinned kid living in Trenton, New Jersey, whose only care was how the Baltimore Orioles were doing. This event changed my life, as well as the lives of the other 350 peopl e who were on those pl anes. Mostly for the better, we became instant celebrities.
Imagine the horror and disgust that I, my family and other hijack victims experienced when we read that Leila Khaled, one of the hijackers directly involved in the 1970 attacks, had been invited by San Francisco State University to address a forum on Gender, Justice and Resistance. Ms. Khaled is a convicted terrorist. She has paid her debt to society. She is a member of the PFLP. She is a symbol not of justice and resistance, but of wanton terrorism and death. Khaled spent only a few days in jail. After her failed hijacking of the El Al pl ane, she was transferred by the Israeli sky marshals to the British police and released in exchange for hostages when a fifth pl ane was hijacked to secure her freedom.
ellauri213.html on line 331: Had Khaled ever apologized for her role in the hijackings or taken steps to show that she is committed to nonviolent efforts to achieve her desired end of driving the invasive Israeli species from her land, I would not object to her speaking at San Francisco State. Peopl e who genuinely learn often make the best teachers. But even after 50 years, Khaled has never expressed remorse or disavowed her actions or those of her comrades. Neither have I for 3000 years of Israeli mass murder of poor Philistines, so there! Never forget, never learn!
ellauri213.html on line 335: In theory, San Francisco State University President Lynn Mahoney is correct in stating that a university is a pl ace where different ideas are presented, discussed and analyzed so that individual conclusions can be drawn. But does that justify giving an unrepentant terrorist a forum to address the students? What will she teach them? The proper way to hijack an aircraft, based on her success in 1969, and what mistakes to avoid based on her failure in 1970? When I was a student in university, I often faced new ideas that ran contrary to my beliefs. But these perspectives were presented by knowledgeable, respectable academics. Some were Nobel Prize winners. None were terrorists. Most of them were Jews.
ellauri213.html on line 350: Over the years, Iraq has provided safe haven to terrorists such as Abu Nidal, whose terror organization carried out more than 90 terrorist attacks in 20 countries that killed or injured nearly 900 peopl e, including 12 Americans. Iraq has also provided safe haven to Abu Abbas, who was responsible for seizing the Egyptian ship Achille Lauro and killing an American passenger. Following the murder of Leon Klinghoffer, the Klinghoffer family founded the Leon and Marilyn Klinghoffer Memorial Foundation, in cooperation with the Anti-Defamation League.
ellauri213.html on line 352: Achille Lauron kaappaus tapahtui 7. lokakuuta 1985, kun neljä Palestiinan vapautusrintamaa (PLF) edustavaa miestä kaappasi Egyptin rannikon edustalla italialaisen valtamerilaivan MS Achille Lauron hänen purjehtiessaan Aleksandriasta Ashdodiin , Israeliin . Kaappaajat murhasivat 69-vuotiaan amerikkalaisen juutalaisen miehen pyörätuolissa, Leon Klinghofferin, ja hänet heitettiin yli laidan. Kaappaus aiheutti "Sigonella-kriisin". Abbasin mukaan Arafat oli lähettänyt hänet vakuuttavan argumentointityylinsä vuoksi, että neljä palestiinalaista oli saanut paniikkikohtauksen käynnistämään kaappauksen ja että hänen yksinään oli ratkaiseva rooli matkustajien vapauttamisessa. Seuraavana päivänä, 13. lokakuuta, Yhdysvallat esitti protestin Italian salliessa Abbasin lähteä ja pyysi myös hänen luovuttamistaan Jugoslaviasta (joka tunnusti dipl omaattisesti PLO:n). Lokakuun 14. päivään mennessä Tanyug, Jugoslavian lehdistötoimisto ja PLO:n virkamiehet Jugoslaviassa ilmoittivat, että Abbas oli lähtenyt Jugoslaviasta. Yhdysvaltain ulkoministeriö julkaisi lausunnon, jossa se julisti "äärimmäisen pettymyksen" siitä, että Jugoslavian viranomaiset olivat evänneet heidän pyyntönsä. Vaikka Youssef Majed Molqi (kaappaaja, joka ampui Klinghofferin) sai yhden ryhmän pisimmistä tuomioista, tuomioistuin mainitsi lieventävänä seikkana hänen lapsuutensa olosuhteet väkivallan ympäröimänä palestiinalaispakolaisleirillä. Vuoden 1988 lehdistötilaisuudessa Algeriassa Abbas tarjosi toisenlaisen selityksen Klinghofferin kuolemalle "Ehkä hän yritti uida kotiin." Vuonna 1994 Saddam Hussein antoi Abbasille turvapaikan Irakissa. Abbas (syntynyt Syyrian pakolaisleirillä) sai uuden kotinsa Gazaan (sen jälkeen, kun hänelle myönnettiin armahdus vuonna 1996 Oslon rauhansopimusten vuonna 1993 allekirjoittamisen mukaisesti). Hänestä tuli Palestiinan kansallisneuvoston edustaja. Maanantaina 14. huhtikuuta 2003 Irakin sodan aikana Yhdysvaltain erikoisjoukot vangitsivat Abbasin Bagdadin laitamilla Yhdysvaltain tiedustelupalvelun tietojen perusteella. Lokakuussa 2002 presidentti George W. Bush oli syyttänyt Irakia siitä, että se oli "tarjonnut turvasataman" Abbasille ja esitti tämän toisena perusteena sotilaalliselle toimille. (Toinenhan oli se asepiilovedätys.) Maanantaina 8. maaliskuuta 2004 Abbas, 55, kuoli "luonnollisiin syihin" (hapenpuute tai verenkiertohäiriö) ollessaan amerikkalainen vanki irakilaisvankilassa Bagdadin ulkopuolella.
ellauri213.html on line 379: Königsberg was the easternmost large city in Germany until World War II. The city was heavily damaged by Allied bombing in 1944 and during the Battle of Königsberg in 1945; it was then captured by the Soviet Union on 9 April 1945. The Potsdam Agreement of 1945 pl aced it under Soviet administration. The city was renamed to Kaliningrad in 1946 in honor of Soviet revolutionary Mikhail Kalinin. Since the dissolution of the Soviet Union, it has been governed as the administrative centre of Russia's Kaliningrad Oblast, the westernmost oblast of Russia.
ellauri213.html on line 397: The full expl anation is to curse the moment that someone came out of their mother, the fact that they were even born. Also can be used as a repl y to kus imak. Mokomaki kusimuki! Äitis on!
ellauri213.html on line 413: The founder of one of the most feared terrorist organisations of the 1970s has walked free from a Japanese prison after compl eting a 20-year sentence for the siege of the French embassy in the Netherlands.
ellauri213.html on line 416: “I apologise for the inconvenience my arrest has caused to so many peopl e,” Shigenobu said after the release. “It’s half a century ago ... but we caused damage to innocent peopl e who were strangers to us by prioritising our battle, such as by hostage-taking.”
ellauri213.html on line 421: ploads/2019/02/z-fusako-shigenobu-e9878de4bfa1-e688bfe5ad90.jpg" />
ellauri213.html on line 434: Seuraavassa on listattuna pahoja naisia rikkomuxineen (kuvissa söpöset alleviivattu): Irma Grese (Naziwächterin), Myra Hindley (serial pedocide), Isabela of Castile (born in the year 1451 and died in 1504, Isabella the Catholic, was queen of Castile and León. She and her husband, Ferdinand II of Aragon, brought stability to the kingdoms that became the basis for the unification of Spain. Isabella and Ferdinand are known for compl eting the Reconquista, ordering conversion or exile of their Muslim and Jewish subjects and financing Christopher Columbus’ 1492 voyage that led to the opening of the “New World”. Isabella was granted the title Servant of God by the Catholic Church in 1974), Beverly Allitt (pedocide, Angel of Death), Queen Mary of England (catholic), Belle Gunness (norwegian-american serial killer), Mary Ann Cotton (serial killer), Ilse Koch (Lagerfrau), Katherine Knight (very bad Aussie), Elizabeth Bathory (hungarian noblewoman and serial killer), ploads/2020/01/17093609/Narco3-1024x857.jpg">Sandra Avila Beltran (drugs), Patty Hearst (hänen isoisänsä oli lehtikeisari William Randolph Hearst. Hiän joutui kidnappauksen uhriksi, mutta pian tämän jälkeen hiän teki pankkiryöstön ja joutui vankilaan), Genene Jones (infanticide nurse), Karla Homolka (Canadian serial killer), Diane Downs (infanticide), Aileen Wuornos (serial killer), Griselda Blanco (drug lady), Lizzie Borden (kirvesmurhaaja), Bonnie Parker (bank robber), Anne Bonny (pirate), Mary Bell (pedocide), ploads/2020/06/IMG_3364.jpeg">Delphine LaLaurie (serial slavekiller), Patricia Krenwinkel (Manson family member), ploads/2019/01/1120_nws_ocr-l-mansonimpact-131.jpg?w=1860">Leslie van Houten (Manson family member), Darlie Routier (infanticide), Susan Smith (infanticide), Susan Atkins (Manson family member), ple.com/profiles/images/ching-shih-2.jpg">Ching Shih (pirate), ploads/2018/09/Anna-Delvey-27.jpg">Anna Sorokin Delvey (con woman), Amelia Dyer (serial killer), Assata Shakur (black terrorist), Belle Gunness (serial killer), Gypsy Rose Blanchard (matricide), Pamela Smart (mariticide), ploads/2014/04/PA-4891398.jpg">Ruth Ellis (nightclub hostess, last woman hanged in UK), ploads/2016/11/phoolan-devi.jpg">Phoolan Devi (bandit), Ma Barker (matriarch), ploads/2021/02/Jennifer_Pan_photo.jpg">Jennifer Pan (parenticide), Virginia Hill (gangster), Karla Faye Tucker (burglar, first woman injected in US), Leonarda Cianciully (serial murderer, soapmaker), Mary Read, ploads/2019/02/Caril-Ann-Fugate-3-e1549989521558.jpg">Carill Ann Fugate (murder spree), Grace Marks (maid), Belle Starr (outlaw, friend of Lucky Luke), Zerelda Mimms (Mrs. Jesse James), Jane Toppan (serial killer), Sara Jane Moore (wannabe assassin of Gerald Ford), Martha Beck (serial killer), Doris Payne (jewel thief), Mary Brunner (Manson family member), Barbara Graham (executed by gas), Grace O'Malley (pirate), ploads/2013/05/Sada_Abe2-300x216.jpg">Sada Abe (jealous geisha. When they asked why she had killed Ishida, “Immediately she became excited and her eyes sparkled in a strange way: ‘I loved him so much, I wanted him all to myself. But since we were not husband and wife, as long as he lived he could be embraced by other women. I knew that if I killed him no other woman could ever touch him again, so I killed him…..’ ), Samantha Lewthwaite (white somali terrorist), Theresa Knorr (murderess), Lynette Fromme (Manson family, wannabe assassin of Gerald Ford), The Freeway Phantom (serial killer), Carol M. Bundy (serial killer), Fanny Kapl an (bolshevik revolutionary), Marguerite Alibert (Ed VII courtesan), Jean Harris (author), Linda Hazzard (physician, serial killer), Mary Jane Kelly (1st victim of Jack the Ripper), Kim Hyon-hui (North-Korean spy), Vera Renczi (serial killer), Clare Bronfman (filthy rich criminal), Kirsten Gilbert (serial killer nurse), Gerda Steinhoff (Lagerwächterin), Linda Carty (baby robber), Estella Marie Thompson (black prostitute, blowjobbed Hugh Grant), Elizabeth Becker (Lagerwächterin), Juana Barraza (asesina en serie), Olivera Circovic (baseball pl ayer, writer, jewel thief), Olga Hepnarova (mental serial killer), Sabina Eriksson (knäpp tvilling), Minnie Dean (serial killer), Madame de Brinvilliers (aristocrat parri- and fratricide), Martha Rendell (familicide, last woman hanged in Western Australia), Violet Gibson (wannabe assassin of Mussolini), Idoia López Riaño (terrorist), Styllou Christofi (murdered her daughter in law), Mary Eastley (convicted of witchcraft), Wanda Klaff (Lagerwächterin), Giulia Tofana (avvelenatrice), Tisiphone (1/3 raivottaresta), Jean Lee (murderer for money), Brigitte Mohnhaupt (RAF terrorist), Marcia (mistress of Commodus), Beate Zschäpe (far-right terrorist), Evelyn Frechette (singer, Dillingerin heila), Francoise Dior (naziaktivisti), Linda Mulhall (nirhasi äidin poikaystävän saxilla), Brigit Hogefeld (RAF terrorist), Martha Corey (Salem witchhunt victim), Marie Lafarge (arsenikkimurha), Debra Lafave (teacher, gave blow job to student), Enriqueta Marti (asasina en serie), Alse Young (witch hanging victim), ploads/sites/4/2018/05/Elizabeth-Lulu.jpg">Elizabeth Michael (actress, involuntary manslaughter: nasty boyfriend hit his head and died while beating her), Susannah Martin (witchcraft), Maria Mandl (Gefängnisoffizerin), Mary Frith (pickpocket and fence), Hanadi Jaradat (suicide bomber), Marie-Josephte Carrivau (mariticide), Gudrun Ensslin (RAF founder), Anna Anderson (vale-Anastasia), Ans van Dijk (jutku nazikollaboraattori), Elizabeth Holmes (bisneshuijari), Ghislaine Maxwell (Epsteinin haahka), Julianna Farrait (drugs), Yolanda Saldivar (embezzler, killer), Jodi Arias (convicted killer Jodi Ann Arias was born on July 9, 1980, in Salinas, California. In the summer of 2008, Arias made national headlines when she was charged with murdering her ex-boyfriend Travis Alexander, a 30-year-old member of the Church of Jesus Christ of Latter Day Saints who was working as a motivational speaker and insurance salesman. Aargh. Justifiable homicide.) Alyssa Bustamante (kid murder), Mary Kay Letourneau (kid abuser), Mirtha Young (drugs), Catherine Nevin (mariticide), Pilar Prades (maid), Irmgard Möller (terrorist), Christine Schürrer (krimi), Reem Riyashi (suicide bomber), Amy Fisher (jealous), Wafa Idris (suicide bomber), Jeanne de Clisson (ex-noblewoman), Christine Papin (maid murderer), Sally McNeil (body builder), Mariette Bosch (murderer), Sandra Ávila Beltrán (drugs), Alice Schwarzer (journalist), Andrea Yates (litter murderer), Mimi Wong (bar hostess), Pauline Nyiramasuhuko (criminal politician), Josefa Segovia (murderer), Martha Needle (serial killer), Antonina Makarova (war criminal), Mary Surratt (criminal businessperson), Dorothea Binz (officer), Leona Helmsley (tax evasion), Angela Rayola (reality tv personality), Léa Papin (maid murderer), Ursula Erikssson (kriminell mördare), Maria Petrovna (spree killer), Aafia Siddiqui (criminal), Fatima Bernawi (palestinian militant), La Voisin (fortune teller), Deniz Seki (singer), Rasmea Odeh (Arab activist), Hildegard Lächert (nurse), Sajida al-Rishawi (suicide bomber), ploads/2015/02/Hayat-Boumeddiene.jpg">Hayat Boumeddiene (ISIS groupie, nähty viimexi Al Holissa), Herta Ehlert (Lagerwächterin), Elizabeth Stride (seriös mördare), Adelheid Schulz (krimi), Jenny-Wanda Barkman (Wächter), Shi Jianqiao (pardoned assassin. The assassination of Sun Chuanfang was ethically justified as an act of filial piety and turned into a political symbol of the legitimate vengeance against the Japanese invaders.), Rosemary West (serial killer), Juana Bormann (Lagerwächterin), Kathy Boudin (criminal), Kate Webster (assassin), Teresa Lewis (murderer), Hermine Braunsteiner (Lagerwächterin), Flor Contempl acion (assassina), Constance Kent (fratricide), Tamara Samsonova (serial killer), Herta Bothe (Lagerwächterin), Maria Gruber (Mörderin), Irene Leidolf (möderin), Waltraud Wagner (Mörderin), Elaine Campione (criminelle), Greta Bösel (Pflegerin), Marie Manning (Mörderin), ple.com/profiles/images/darya-nikolayevna-saltykova-2.jpg">Darya Nikolayevna Saltykova (sadist), Nora Parham (executed), Maria Barbella (assassina), Linda Wenzel (ISIS activist), Anna Marie Hahn (Mörderin), Suzane von Richthofen (parenticide), Charlotte Mulhall (murderer), Khioniya Guseva (kriminal), Daisy de Melker (serial killer nurse), Stephanija Meyer (Mörderin), Sinedu Tadesse (murderer), Ayat al-Akhras (suicide bomber), Akosita Lavulavu (minister of infrastructure and tourism), Sabrina de Sousa (criminal dipl omat), Sally Basset (poisoner), Emma Zimmer (Aufseher), Mary Clement (serial killer), Irina Gaidamachuk (serial killer), Dagmar Overbye (serialmorder), Gesche Gottfried (Mörderin), Frances Knorr (serial killer), Beate Schmidt (Serienmörderin), Elizabeth Clarke (accused victim of witchcraft), Kim Sun-ja (serial killer), Olga Konstantinovana Briscorn (serial killer), Roxana Baldetti (politico), Rizana Nafeek (house maid), Margaret Scott (accused of witchcraft), Jacqueline Sauvage (meurtrier), Veronique Courjault (tueur en série), Barbara Erni (thief), Hilde Lesewitz (Schutzstaffel Wächterin), Thenmoli Rajaratnam (suicide bomber), ple.com/women-criminals.php">etc. etc. .
ellauri213.html on line 436: Sinedu Tadesse September 25, 1975 – May 28, 1995) was a junior at Harvard College who stabbed her roommate, Trang Phuong Ho, to death, then committed suicide. The incident may have resulted in a variety of changes to the administration of living conditions at Harvard. Tadesse is buried at the Ethiopian Orthodox Cemetery, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia. When Tadesse entered Harvard, she earned below-average grades, and was told that this would prevent her from attending top-ranked medical schools in the U.S. She made no friends, remaining distant even from relatives she had in the area. Tadesse sent a form letter to dozens of strangers that she picked from the phone book, describing her unhappiness and pl eading with them to be her friend. One woman responded to the letter but became alarmed by the bizarre writings and recordings Tadesse sent her in return; she had no further contact with Tadesse. Another woman found the letter obnoxious and sent it to a friend who worked at Harvard to review.
ellauri214.html on line 34:
FOSSIILEJA KAIVAMASSA play:none">Kliseitä
ellauri214.html on line 41: So, yes, the cynicism is something that is compl etely accepted socially in Russia and really disgusts me. They think everybody is corrupt and cynical, including westerners, and on top of that, they are unbelievably lazy. I did not want my kids to grow up to be like that. So I moved to the West. Im a fund manager. Managing funds is fun, but dont expect two långa fikapauser per dag, with no shop talk allowed, like the Swedes.
ellauri214.html on line 64: In an obvious parallel with the Potter books, The Casual Vacancy is populated by a huge cast of mean, unsympathetic, small-minded folk. "This novel for adults is filled with a variety of peopl e like Harry’s aunt and uncle, Petunia and Vernon Dursley: self-absorbed, small-minded, snobbish and judgmental folks, whose stories neither engage nor transport us.” — Michiko Kakutani, USA:n Toini Havu.
ellauri214.html on line 66: J. K. Rowling’s first adult novel The Casual Vacancy stirred a ruckus within Sikh Community after its publication leading to the involvement of SGPC and its head showing concern with the negative portrayal of Sikh characters in the novel. Rowling defends the novel by her theory of ‘corrosive racism’ after her ‘vast amount of research’ in Sikhism. The chapter expl ores diasporic Sikh identity through the character of Sukhvinder who though dyslexic is stifled by her mother and harassed by her classmate Fats through slanderous remarks targeting her Sikh identity. Though Sukhvinder resorts to self-torture after undergoing racism, she emerges victorious like a brave Sikh by her self-determination and emerges a heroine by helping everybody in Britain. The chapter appl ies Teun A. van Dijk’s racist discourse and post-colonial theories specifically Homi Bhabha’s hybridity of cultures, Jacques Rancière’s distribution of the sensible hinting at the redistribution of identities to make invisible diaspora visible and inaudible audible and Gayatri Spivak’s theory of the subaltern to prove that the Sikh diaspora remains in Charhdi Kala (higher state of mind) even in tough situations. The chapter concludes that though British Sikh diaspora undergoes racialism leading to identity crisis, Sikhs finally find resolution through Sikh identity model Sukhvinder who, treading the footsteps of Sikh heroes like Bhai Kanhayia, becomes a heroin addict by risking her life to save Robbie and by helping all in the novel.
ellauri214.html on line 68: The Shiromani Gurdwara Parbandhak Committee (abbr. SGPC; "Supreme Gurdwara Management Committee") is an organization in India responsible for the management of gurdwaras, Sikh pl aces of worship in three states of Punjab, Haryana, and Himachal Pradesh and union territory of Chandigarh. SGPC also administers Darbar Sahib in Amritsar.
ellauri214.html on line 70: In response to a Twitter post about how COVID-19 has been affecting peopl e who menstruate, Rowling wrote, “‘Peopl e who menstruate.’ I’m sure there used to be a word for those peopl e. Someone help me out. Wumben? Wimpund? Woomud?”. In this post, Rowling mocks trans peopl e by insinuating that women who do not have a period are not real women. This tweet not only offended trans women who do not have periods, but also cisgender women born with medical conditions that prevent them from having a period, older women who have gone through menapause, and transgender men who still menstrate. Rowling has continued to bash transgender peopl e by comparing hormone therapy to gay conversion therapy and tweeting articles arguing that transitioning is a medical experiment. Many have called Rowling out on her transphobia, and some have attempted to educate her on transgender issues and the difference between sex and gender. However, the author has not been receptive to these comments, and continues to deny that she is transphobic. Rowling’s transphobia has prompted Harry Potter actors Daniel Radcliff (Harry Potter), Emma Watson (Hermionie Granger), Rupert Grint (Ron Weasley), Bonnie Wright (Ginny Weasley), and Evanna Lynch (Luna Lovegood) to show their support for the transgender community. The only actor staunchly standing on her side is Tom Veladro (Voldemort). Oops, I shouldn't have said the name.
ellauri214.html on line 72: Though Rowling’s transphobia has been publicized the most, fans have also begun to notice prejudice in her writing. Very few peopl e of color are featured in J. K. Rowling’s books, and those that are have few lines and no detailed story arcs. One of the peopl e of color given more thought was Cho Chang, Harry Potter’s love interest who was first introduced in the third book, Harry Potter and the Prisoner of Azkaban. Rowling’s racism toward Asians and lack of knowledge of Asian culture is clearly evident from just the name Cho Chang, which is a mix of Korean and Chinese surnames. Korea and China have a longstanding history as political adversaries and each country has a distinct culture. While Rowling went to great efforts in creating a wonderfully immersive wizarding world, she gave no thought to what Cho’s ethnicity is. Cho was also sorted into Ravenclaw house, the school house for those of high intelligence, pl aying into a common stereotype of Asians. The only other Asian characters mentioned in the series are Indian twins Padma and Pavarti Patil. While Rowling appears to have given more thought to these characters, pl acing Padma in Ravenclaw and breaking the Asian stereotype by pl acing Pavarti in Gryffindor, she ultimately fails to adequately write Asian characters. While Pavarti, as a member of Harry Potter’s house, was given more depth than Cho or her sister, many South Asian fans were irritated by the girls’ dresses in the fourth movie, Harry Potter and the Goblet of Fire. The twins wore dull and unflattering traditional Indian attire, which many saw as a mockery of Indian culture. Cho herself wore an East Asian style dress in this movie which was a mix of different Asian styles. Rowling continued her habit of stereotyping Asians in the Fantastic Beast Movies, the first of which was released in 2016 and set in the 1920’s, several decades before the Harry Potter series. In this pre-series, the only Asian representation is displ ayed in the form of a woman who has been cursed to turn into a beast. Fans may remember the villain Voldemort’s pet snake, Nagini, who served him throughout the Harry Potter series. Fans were surprised to learn when watching The Crimes of Grindelwald, the second movie in the Fantastic Beasts series, that Nagini was not always a snake, but was actually a woman who had been cursed to turn into a snake. In the movie, Nagini, in human form, is caged and forced to perform in a circus. Though we do not know how Nagini came to meet Voldemort, we do know that she became his servant and the keeper of a wee snakelike portion of his soul. This is more than slightly problematic. Not only was Nagini the only Asian representation in the film, but she was also a half-human who was forced to serve an evil white man for a great part of her existence. Author Ellen Oh commented on Nagini’s inclusion in the film saying “I feel like this is the problem when white peopl e want to diversify and don’t actually ask POC how to do so. They don’t make the connection between making Nagini an Asian woman who later on becomes the pet snake of an EEVIL whitish man.”
ellauri214.html on line 76: J.K. Rowling has also included pl enty of sexism in her writing, indicative of her internalised misogyny. Cho Chang was Harry Potter’s love interest throughout books 4 and 5. However, Cho was in a relationship with another student in the fourth book, and unfortunately this student was killed by Lord Voldemort at the end of the book. This leaves Cho rightfully distraught. Though still in emotional turmoil, she develops a crush on Harry and they begin dating. During their first kiss, Cho is crying because she is thinking of her dead boyfriend. Harry and Cho break up after multipl e arguments later in the book. Later on in the series, Harry develops feelings for his best friend’s sister, Ginny Weasley. Rowling periodically writes how Harry prefers Ginny to Cho because Cho was too emotional after the death of her boyfriend. Harry preferred Ginny, who was stronger and could contain her emotions, supposedly because she had grown up with 6 brothers (no, 5, Ronny is a sissy). This comparison of the two girls demonstrates Rowling’s internalized feelings that women exist for the purpose of pl easing men. The thinly veiled idea that women who are too emotional or too much drama queens are not desirable is evident in Rowling’s writing. Fleur Delcore is another exampl e of this feeling. Fleur is a student at a French wizarding school who competes against Harry in a difficult tournament in the fourth book. Fleur is part veela, who are magical beings of extreme beauty but can turn monstrous when angered. Fleur eventually marries Ron Weasley’s older brother, Bill. Hermionie, Harry’s other best friend, and Ginny constantly compl ain about Fleur. However, the only thing their animosity can be traced back to is that Fleur is a beautiful Frenchy woman and she is confident in that, whilst they are just snubnosed Brits. This further develops Rowling’s internalized misogyny. She views women who are confident in their beauty as annoying, and has the idea that women should seek male validation. Though these portions of the book were likely unintentional, speaking from personal experience, it has to be said that Rowling’s writing of women in her book have had a lasting effect on her female readers.
ellauri214.html on line 83: But if fans are expecting a Harry Potter-like book, they’re in for a shock: The Casual Vacancy features some similar Harry Potter themes, such as morality and mortality, but that is where the comparisons end. The adjectives, for exampl e, are of a different sort.
ellauri214.html on line 86: Whereas Rowling’s shepherding of readers was, in the Harry Potter juvenile series, an essential asset, in The Casual Vacancy her firm hand can feel constraining. She leaves little space for the peripheral or the ambiguous; hidden secrets are labeled as hidden secrets, and events are easy to predict. We seem to watch peopl e move around Pagford as if they were on Harry’s magical parchment map of Hogwarts.
ellauri214.html on line 104: I think JK Rowling did one thing exceptionally well: she had really interesting whimsical ideas based on everyday mundane life, and she can write these ideas out in a very visually exciting fashion. These little sparkles of crazy fun ideas can almost make you forget about the other glaring problems of the book. A lot of peopl e (myself included) are attracted, or mesmerized by these whimsical sparkles of imagination. It's a fascinating magical world that's so imaginative and yet at the same time mirror our own.
ellauri214.html on line 106: But, Rowling's talent is skin deep. I absolutely do not agree that she did a great job in character and/or pl ot development. Her characters are pretty clichéd (Chosen one and his side kick), her setting is pretty narrow (British boarding school experiences), her pl ot is pretty predictable, and like all amateur writers, her pl ot line often meanders for no good reason at all. Her world building is imaginative, but lack pl anning. Simpl y put, most part of her world is a whim, it's not coherent, she didn't think it through. And the more you think about it, the bigger the problem it is. Oh and that one character everyone is singing praises about, as if it's the best written character of all time? Stereotypical Byronic hero. I read how peopl e praise Snape being this greatest character of our generation, I couldn't help but wondering, you guys never read Wuthering Heights?! I've never attended an American high school but I'm pretty sure the Great Gatsby is on the required reading list.
ellauri214.html on line 108: Rowling became popular because she got lucky. Her work is more accessible than the works of peopl e mentioned above. She set out to write light-hearted children's books, which allowed her works to avoid some of the more serious scrutiny from literature critics. And I guess because peopl e don't read nearly as much as they used to. When you never had a good burger, you'd think Big Mac is the best thing in the world.
ellauri214.html on line 133: I don't know how to be nice to peopl e. Everything I say is full of snark, sarcasm and acid. Because I'm independent and strong.
ellauri214.html on line 146: Despite living on my own for a while, I have no peopl e skills. I have only one emotion: anger. I'm angry with everyone and I pushes everyone away.
ellauri214.html on line 148: After I throw tantrums and verbally abuse peopl e around me, I'm entitled to other peopl e making an effort to reach out to me, and apologize to me. Because I have a troubled past and everyone owes me some extra effort.
ellauri214.html on line 150: Everyone forgive my tantrums and acting out, everyone forgive my irrational actions. I can hit everyone, do anything. Because I have a troubled past, every stupid, abusive, damaging thing I do to peopl e around me is justified and forgiven.
ellauri214.html on line 154: The protagonist of the movie, who's actual family are fridged to create cheap motivation, will serves as my surrogate father or brother figure. And I will be his repl acement family.
ellauri214.html on line 163: I'm entitled to be told about everything concerning current situation, every movement of the protagonist, all his pl ans. If he doesn't tell me everything, he's an asshole and I'm going to throw a tantrum and get myself in trouble.
ellauri214.html on line 169: In fiction, a MacGuffin (sometimes McGuffin) is an object, device, or event that is necessary to the pl ot and the motivation of the characters, but insignificant, unimportant, or irrelevant in itself. The term was originated by Angus MacPhail for film, adopted by Alfred Hitchcock, and later extended to a similar device in other fiction.
ellauri214.html on line 173: The MacGuffin technique is common in films, especially thrillers. Usually, the MacGuffin is revealed in the first act, and thereafter declines in importance. It can reappear at the climax of the story but may actually be forgotten by the end of the story. Multipl e MacGuffins are sometimes derisively identified as pl ot coupons.
ellauri214.html on line 175: In contrast to Hitchcock's view of a MacGuffin as an object around which the pl ot revolves but about which the audience does not care, George Lucas believes that "the audience should care about it almost as much as about the dueling heroes and villains on-screen (i.e. not at all)." Lucas describes R2-D2 as the MacGuffin of the original Star Wars film,and said that the Ark of the Covenant in the Bible, or the titular MacGuffin in Raiders of the Lost Ark, was an excellent exampl e as opposed to the more obscure MacGuffin in Indiana Jones and the Templ e of Doom and "feeble" MacGuffin in Indiana Jones and the Last Crusade.
ellauri214.html on line 185: After the protagonist had saved me from the bad guys, I'll cry and scream at the protagonist about how he could kill all those peopl e! “You're a MONSTER!” is the most common dialogue line.
ellauri214.html on line 206: Torstain 7.7. Hoblassa tuijottaa Erja Yläjärvi Pohjois-Savosta huolestuneena lukijaa kädet puuskassa: Ukraina kan förlora, hur ser sig Europa då i spegeln? Liksom Ryssland inte hörde till Europa. Mera tunga västerländska vapen för ukrainare, det är det som doktorn ordnat! Erja ser ut i bilden som en stridslysten liten kvinnlig apa. I samma nummer säger Ulf Johansson att det kanske är skäl att överge donbassregionen till ryssarna, och Ulla Klötzer (kvinnor för Fred Karlsson, Esbo) använder fula ord om Nato och dess pl aner för "full spectrum dominance". Det tog en vecka för de gamla silverryggarna att vakna upp och komma till Erjas undsättning.
ellauri214.html on line 226: It supposedly originated from a conversation between the actress Lillie Langtry and the Bishop of Worcester. They were at a country house weekend party and on Sunday morning before church, they went for a stroll in the garden. On their walk, the bishop cut his finger on a rose thorn. Over lunch, Lillie enquired about his injury, asking: "How is your prick?" To which, the Bishop repl ied: "Throbbing", causing the butler to drop the potatoes.
ellauri214.html on line 230: Matthew R. Meier of West Chester University of Pennsylvania and Christopher A. Medjesky of the University of Findlay have argued that such off-hand, common remarks such as 'that's what she said' jokes are deepl y entrenched in modern society, and contribute to humorizing and legitimizing sexual misconduct.
ellauri214.html on line 236: Hattunne sir, sanoi shakkiropotti ja mursi 7-vuotiaan pojan sormen. Suomalaisten ahdistus on räjähtänyt käsiin. Jan-Henry aavistaa mistä se voi johtua: pandemia ja Ukrainan selkkaus. IL:n pl us-juttu lue! Enkä lue. Vedettäköön IL Vita Varan vessanpöntöstä samaa alatietä kuin SMP. Ruozi ei ole milliäkään parempi kuin maailman diktatuurivaltiot. Eikä Suomikaan.
ellauri214.html on line 242: In his work Bibliotheca historica (Library of History), Diodorus Siculus wrote that the Amazons came from Libya in north Africa. Diodorus’s account is set in the time of myth. He wrote that the warriors’ most famous queen was Myrina, who lived before the hero Perseus saved the Ethiopian princess Andromeda from a sea monster. Myrina led her warriors to a great number of victories, including one against the mythical island of Atlantis. Myrina led a large army of 30,000 foot-soldiers and 3,000 cavalry against the Atlanteans. Diodorus claimed that the Amazon cavalry used tactics similar to those empl oyed by the Parthians of west Asia, who fought the Roman general Crassus (c. 115— 53 BCE), firing arrows as they rode away from their enemies. The Atlanteans eventually surrendered to Myrina after she had captured and destroyed one of their cities, enslaving and carrying away the women and the children.
ellauri214.html on line 245: Myrina was said to have conquered most of Libya, from where she led her army east toward Egypt. When she reached Egypt, she befriended the king before going on to defeat the Bedouin and Syrian peopl es and conquering some of west Asia. Although the peopl e of Cilicia (part of modern Turkey) were not defeated, they were willing to accept her rule. The Amazons also captured the island of Lesbos in the Aegean Sea, where Myrina founded the city of Mitylene, named for her sister. While sailing across the Aegean, Myrina got caught in a storm. The queen prayed to the Mother Goddess to save her and was guided to a deserted island, which she named Samothrace. Myrina’s good fortune, however, did not last forever: she died in battle against the Thracians and Scythians, led by the Thracian Mopsos. Without their great leader, the Amazons lost a series of battles to Mopsos. Eventually their empire collapsed and they withdrew back to Libya. Back to the drawing board. 2 thousand years later Myrinä's compatriot Muammar Gaddafi says in Swedish: Han är nöjd.
ellauri214.html on line 247: VIDEO
ellauri214.html on line 251: Det kan finnas en gnutta sanning i Ulf Johanssons och Ulla Klötzers (HBL 7.7) kritik av Nato; inget är väl helt rött eller vitt. Klart är också att krig gynnar det militärindustriella kompl exet liksom farsoter och andra sjukdomar föder läkemedelsbranschen. Men är alternativet att låta epidemier spridas vilt och Putins Ryssland breda ut sig? Och som någon skrev är det väl bättre att vara en fästing i famnen på Joe Biden än att vara en fluga i Putins mun. Här gäller det att välja de minst onda av två onda saker! Den dag Putins Ryssland förhoppningsvis är krossat och helt avrustat - och det borde vara målet - behövs Nato inte mera. Där konsten tar slut tar våldet vid. Då kan vi igen fokusera på miljövård och annat klovneri, smida om svärden till pl ogar och så vidare. Det verkar nog nu som enbart militär makt kan hålla Putin stången. Det gäller ju inte bara Ukrainas utan hela Europas framtid. Vi behöver inte ha skygglappar för kriget i Ukraina överskuggar allt - miljöfrågor, idrottsprestationer, rymdfärder med mera. Ett Putins Ryssland som herrefolk i världen vore en mardröm: oligarkerna stjäl vad andra arbetar ihop, censur införs och oliktänkare pl aceras i fängelse eller avrättas, aborträtt slopas, miljön sätts på undantag. Just som det händer nu i Biden's USA. Väst har varit undfallande mot Ryssland-investerat i landet, gjort sig beroende av ryska råvaror och energi, godkänt landets deltagande i internationella tävlingar och returnerat värdefulla konstföremål fastän Ryssland hela tiden varit på krigsfot. De ryska konstföremålen kunde vi lika väl ha behållit själva!
ellauri214.html on line 272: Varangian: Miten muka Venäjä käy energiasotaa, jos EU maat eivät suostu maksaamaan energiasta rupl ina? Tämähän se totuus on. Itse EU maat ovat sanktioineet itsensä tähän pulaan. Kehuttiin, kuinka helposti pääsemme eroon Venäjän energiasta, mutta nyt onkin mennyt kakat housuun EU mailta. Ei tainnutkaan olla niin helppoa selvitä ilman Venäjän energiaa. Jos jo nyt on vaikeuksia kesällä, talvi tulee olemaan suorastaan apokalyptinen.
ellauri214.html on line 296: Mike 74: Venäjä odotti kiltisti kaasu sopimuksen päättymiseen ja uuden sopimuksen ehto oli maksu rupl issa. Tämä ei länsimaille käynyt, no sitten ei varmaan heru kaasua. Joten Venäjä ei ole sopimuksia rikkonut.
ellauri214.html on line 300: merkillistä: Vetäkääs nyt kaikki vähän henkeä. Venäjä pyysi maksun rupl issa, koska pakotteet estivät maksujen dollari-/euromääräisten suorittamisen Venäjälle. Italian pm Mario Draghi kävi kertomassa asiasta mm. USA:n senaatille ja kertoi samalla, ettei rupl amaksamiselle ole määrätty sanktioita. Tämä asia on kerrottu jokaisessa varteenotettavassa suomalaisessa tiedotusvälineessä, ei ehkä MV-lehdessä.
ellauri214.html on line 302: Suomessa omistusohjausministeri Tuppurainen kielsi rupl amaksut ja sähkötoimitukset katkesivat ns. oma vika rahikaisella.
ellauri214.html on line 461: Kakspl us turha ihminen 2009
ellauri214.html on line 494: Kaxpl us: Mä olen niin turha ihminen 2008
ellauri214.html on line 541: At 56, Tokarczuk is an invigorating presence: her black dreadlocks studded with bright blue beads, eyes rimmed with luminous turquoise. “Flights grew out of a time when I was travelling a lot,” she expl ains, at pains to stress how liberating this was for those raised under an oppressive communist regime. “I got my first passport in 1989, when I was 28. Wow.”
ellauri214.html on line 554: “I opened a history that was taboo from a number of perspectives: it was swept under the carpet by Catholics, Jews and communists. It took me eight years to research such fragile and contentious facts,” she says, “But after I won the Nike Jogging Shoe Award [Poland’s most prestigious literary prize], I was attacked by peopl e who didn’t want to know about Poland’s dark past.” She sighs.
ellauri214.html on line 556: “Polish culture has always had a strong anti-Semitic undercurrent. There has been awful persecution. But it is time for us to look at Poland’s relationship with the Jews, to accept that we have Jewish blood and Polish culture mixed with our own. I was surprised by the anger I provoked, but thrilled by the enormous support that followed. It seems society is divided between the peopl e who can read and those who cannot!”
ellauri214.html on line 560: Tokarczuk dismisses the global rise of nationalist movements as “the death throes of an outdated ideology. These old ideas of the state are compl etely disappearing,” she laughs. “Peopl e are migrating, travelling. Economics and the internet do not respect borders. We travel between different network providers! Welcome to EE!” She taps her phone with glee. (EE on joko Euroopan siipikarjayhdistys tai UK:n rahakkain operaattori.) “You could read Flights as an elegy for the old Europe.”
ellauri214.html on line 662: VIDEO
ellauri216.html on line 34: TIMANTTISET ROSSIT play:none">Propagandaa
ellauri216.html on line 55: Kuten todettiin, King Jamesilla psalmi 129 ei sisällä tuonsisältöistä värssyä. Lähimmäxi tulee: The pl owers pl owed upon my back: they made long their furrows.
ellauri216.html on line 131: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/42/Hosios_Loukas_%28diakonikon%2C_arch%29_-_Dionysius_Areopagite.jpg/200px-Hosios_Loukas_%28diakonikon%2C_arch%29_-_Dionysius_Areopagite.jpg" />
ellauri216.html on line 150: Proklos (m.kreik. Πρόκλος ὁ Διάδοχος, Próklos ho Diádokhos, Proklos Seuraaja; lat. Proclus; 8. helmikuuta 412 – 17. huhtikuuta 487) oli antiikin kreikkalainen uuspl atonilainen filosofi ja Platonin Akatemian johtaja. Hän oli antiikin viimeisimpiä merkittäviä filosofeja. Proklos kehitti yhden tarkimmin määritellyistä uuspl atonistisista järjestelmistä. Hänen elinaikansa sijoittuu antiikin Kreikan filosofian loppuun, joten hänen ajatuksensa siirtyivät tehokkaasti keskiaikaiseen filosofiaan ja islamilaiseen filosofiaan.
ellauri216.html on line 156: Prokloksesta tuli Akatemian uusi johtaja Syrianoksen kuoltua. Hän asui Ateenassa kuolemaansa saakka, lukuun ottamatta vuoden kestänyttä maanpakoa, johon hän joutui siksi, että kaupungin kristityt hallitsijat eivät suvainneet kaikkia hänen poliittis-filosofisia ajatuksiaan. Talo, jonka Proklos peri ja jossa uuspl atonilainen koulu toimi, on mahdollisesti löydetty: arkeologinen kohde tunnetaan nimellä Prokloksen talo.
ellauri216.html on line 167: Proclus’ own interests are purely metaphysical: his task is to expl ain how evil fits into the scheme of things, how its existence squares with the omnipotence and all-pervading presence of the Good God, how it comes about and what its ontological status is. All of these questions are undoubtedly important, and I do not mean to belittle them.
ellauri216.html on line 198: The Didache (Greek: Διδαχή, translit. Didakhé, lit. "Teaching"), also known as The Lord's Teaching Through the Twelve Apostles to the Nations (Διδαχὴ Κυρίου διὰ τῶν δώδεκα ἀποστόλων τοῖς ἔθνεσιν), is a brief anonymous early Christian treatise written in Koine Greek, dated by modern scholars to the first or (less commonly) second century AD. The first line of this treatise is "The teaching of the Lord to the Gentiles (or Nations) by the twelve apostles". The text, parts of which constitute the oldest extant written catechism, has three main sections dealing with Christian ethics, rituals such as baptism and Eucharist, and Church organization. The opening chapters describe the virtuous Way of Life and the wicked Way of Death. The Lord's Prayer is included in full. Baptism is by immersion, or by affusion if immersion is not practical. Fasting is ordered for Wednesdays and Fridays. Two primitive Eucharistic prayers are given. Church organization was at an early stage of development. Itinerant apostles and prophets are important, serving as "chief priests" and possibly celebrating the Eucharist. Meanwhile, local bishops and deacons also have authority and seem to be taking the pl ace of the itinerant ministry.
ellauri216.html on line 202: play="autopl ay" loop="loop">
ellauri216.html on line 216: VIDEO
ellauri216.html on line 316: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a7/Heating_houses_with_Russian_ovens_in_Soligalich_city.JPG/250px-Heating_houses_with_Russian_ovens_in_Soligalich_city.JPG" />
ellauri216.html on line 318: Soligalitš (ven. Солига́лич) on kaupunki Kostroman alueella Venäjällä. Suola-Galitsia, jonka suolakaivoxista suomalaisetkin saivat suolansa. Galitsiasta monet juutalaiset muuttivat pogromeja pakoon Amerikkaan. Kostroma on keski-Venäjällä Moskovan liepeillä. Se sijaitsee Volgaan laskevan Kostromajoen rannalla 216 kilometriä Kostromasta koilliseen. Kaupunki on Soligalitšin piirin keskus. Asukkaita oli 6 100 henkeä vuonna 2010. Nyt varmaan vähemmän. Kaupunki koostuu lähinnä 1–2-kerroksisista koristeellisista puutaloista. Kostroma-joen vastarannalla on kylpylä, jossa annetaan erilaisia mineraalivesi- ja mutahoitoja. Soligalich.com on myytävänä. Notable peopl e:
ellauri216.html on line 324: According to a 2010 survey, there are a total of 36,700 villages in Russia with fewer than 10 inhabitants. Traditionally Russia’s agricultural land was subdivided into a patchwork of villages and fields, interspersed by forest and marsh. Now the villages are deserted and crumbling: the state closes them down, often on a whim, and young peopl e leave to find work elsewhere. Matilda Moreton tells the tragic story based on fieldwork in the Russian North.
ellauri216.html on line 332: Äiti kulta kysyy ukolta: mikä sai sinut pettämään kansan asian ja rupeamaan munkixi? No salamiakki! Se on pitkä tarina jos jaxatte kuunnella. Olen kotoisin Karjalasta, jossa on oikeauskoista pyhyyttä ja pahuutta. Nuorena rellestin, nuorena pitää rellestää ja vanhana katua. Tätä olen kyllä saanut katua. Pallosalama näytti tanssinhaluisille nuorille mistä kana kusee. Kärventynyt munkki päätti panna molon kuivatelakalle iäxi. Haiseva munkki ei huoli edes peseytyä. Taisi kyrpä vähän kärytä. Ukki antoi räkämunkille kolme rupl aa. Osta iso numero.
ellauri216.html on line 339: VIDEO
ellauri216.html on line 483: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/67/Metropolitan_Panteleimon.jpg/250px-Metropolitan_Panteleimon.jpg" />
ellauri216.html on line 541: Jumalankantajaisä Makarios syntyi Egyptin suistomaa-alueen kylässä vuoden 300 tienoilla. Nuoruudessaan hän työskenteli kamelinajajana. Jumala kutsui häntä kuitenkin toisenlaiseen elämään ja Makarios vastasi kutsuun kuuliaisesti. Hän vetäytyi kylässään keljaan ja aloitti yksinäisen rukous- ja paastokilvoituksen. Kun ihmiset tahtoivat tehdä hänestä papin, hän pakeni toiseen kylään. Siellä raskaaksi tullut tyttö alkoi syyttää Makariosta häpäisemisestään. Makarios otettiin kiinni ja häntä raahattiin pitkin katua. Häntä lyötiin ja solvattiin, mutta hän ei sanonut sanaakaan puolustaakseen itseään vaan päinvastoin lupasi tehdä työtä hankkiakseen elatuksen naiselle ja lapselle. Makarios piti tilannetta Jumalan lähettämänä. Hän oli tuolloin noin 30 vuoden ikäinen. Kun Makarioksen syyttömyys tuli aikanaan ilmi, kylän väki lähti joukolla hänen luokseen pyytämään anteeksi. Mitenkä totuus tuli ilmi? No, when the woman's delivery drew near, her labor became exceedingly difficult. She did not manage to give birth until she confessed Macarius's innocence. She confessed that she had slandered the hermit, and revealed the name of the real father. (Who was it?) A multitude of peopl e then came asking for his forgiveness, but he fled to the Nitrian Desert to escape all mundane glory.
ellauri216.html on line 1137: Syyskuun 21. päivänä 2008, kaikkein pyhimmän Jumalan syntymän juhlana. patriarkka Aleksius II suoritti suuren pyhitysriitin Pyhän Vladimir Sketen (arkkitehti Andrei Anisimov ) temppelikompl eksille Valaamin saarella ja ensimmäiselle Jumalallinen liturgia äskettäin vihitty kirkossa.
ellauri216.html on line 1138: 10. heinäkuuta 2009 patriarkka Kirill ja Karjalan tasavallan päämies Sergei Katanandov avasivat patriarkka Aleksius II:n mukaan nimetyn museon Pyhän Vladimirin Sketen temppelikompl eksin kellariin; avajaiset ajoitettiin Valaaman luostarielämän elpymisen 20-vuotisjuhlaan.
ellauri217.html on line 34: POPEYE THE SAILOR MAN! play:none">Romantiikkaa
ellauri217.html on line 69: Central to the pl ot are the futuwwat (strongmen) who control the alley and exact protection money from the peopl e. The successive heroes overthrow the strongmen of their time, but in the next generation new strongmen spring up and things are as bad as ever. Arafat tries to use his knowledge of expl osives to destroy the strongmen, but his attempts to discover Gabalawi's secrets leads to the death of the old man (though he does not directly kill him). The Chief Strongman guesses the truth and blackmails Arafat into helping him to become the dictator of the whole Alley. The book ends, after the murder of Arafat, with his friend searching in a rubbish tip for the book in which Arafat wrote his secrets. The peopl e say "Oppression must cease as night yields to day. We shall see the end of tyranny and the dawn of miracles." Haha, night follows day as surely as the other way round, and night wins out in the end. Valot sammuu, haju jää.
ellauri217.html on line 101: “You are optimistic, inspiring, outgoing, and expressive. Peopl e see you as cheerful, positive and charming; your personality has a certain bounce and verve that so powerfully affects others that you can inspire peopl e without effort. All of this upward energy is a symptom of your tremendous creativity. Your verbal skills may well lead you into the fields of writing, comedy, theater, and music.”
ellauri217.html on line 118: Popular Peopl es & Celebrities on Gemalia Name: Currently there are no peopl es found! Is your name is Gemalia or If you known peopl e on Gemalia name then add it to the list.
ellauri217.html on line 143: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/41/Muhammad_13.jpg/200px-Muhammad_13.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri217.html on line 152: Ibn Hisham kertoo, että kun Muhammedin isä Abdullah meni kosimaan Muhammedin tulevaa äitiä Jeminaa, muuan nainen asettui jalat harallaan morsianehdokkaaksi Abdullahin reitin varrelle. Hänet oli saanut liikkeelle miehen haarovälissä hehkunut valotäpl ä, joka oli merkki syntyvästä profeetasta. Abdullah kuitenkin kulki hänen ohitseen Aminan luo. Valo "siirtyi" pitkän äherryxen ja hedelmöityksen jälkeen isän otsalta letkulla Muhammedin äidin kohtuun. Kun Amina synnytti Muhammedin, hänestä lähti valo, jonka avulla näki Bostran linnat Syyriassa. Aminanko perseestä päivä paistoi? Juurikin niin! Ibn Ishaq kertoo, että valitettavasti kadonnut ”Jeesuksen aikainen evankeliumi” ennusti Muhammedin eli Munhamannan tulosta. Muhammedin äidin nimi, Amina, tarkoittaa hepreassa "kasvattajaa". Isän nimi Abdullah tarkoittaa "Jumalan palvelijaa" ja esiintyy Raamatussa esimerkiksi Abrahamin kunnianimenä. Ei järin omaperäistä.
ellauri217.html on line 195: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/4/47/Muh-hund-original-rondellliten.JPG" height="500px" /> ploads/2007/07/muhammed-rondelllit.JPG" height="500px" />
ellauri217.html on line 225: Hetkinen, Muhammedin muori oli tuskin neljääkymmentä, miten ne muuten oisi ehtineet bylsiä sitä määrää lapsia? Tai bylsiä kylläkin, siinä ei kauan nokka tuhise varsinkaan täydellä kassilla, mutta odotuxet ovat pitkiä. Kassi oli varmaan läski kun se sai tupl a illallisia.
ellauri217.html on line 231: He liked things to be clean. Peopl e worship power, even its victims. True happiness can never be found until the things that lead to it are pl entiful for everyone. But that´s impossible, because happiness is a differential: everyone must have more than the others and more than before. Everyone just can't have that, it's a logical contradiction.
ellauri217.html on line 235: A little guy came to me and said: I am Gimli, servant of Alp-Öhi. She was so surprised that her nippl e slipped from Kassen''s mouth. Kassen´s face puckered ready to cry, but she quickly gave him the nippl e back. Kassen fell asleep as she sucked.
ellauri217.html on line 262: Trustee Kadri-Helena onkin varmaan se ketku jutku Ben Gurion tms joka sai atomipommin teko-ohjeen heimoveljiltä jenkeistä. Israel's first Prime Minister David Ben-Gurion was "nearly obsessed" with obtaining nuclear weapons to prevent the Holocaust from reoccurring. He stated, "What Einstein, Oppenheimer, and Teller, the three of them are Jews, made for the United States, could also be done by scientists in Israel, for their own peopl e". Deborah Brand 3 Aug 2022 0 2:04 Israeli Prime Minister Yair Lapid said this week Israel has "other capabilities" against threats from Iran, in a rare allusion to the country's widely reported nuclear stockpile.
ellauri217.html on line 329: "Men när jag passerade en dörr på glänt stannade jag pl ötsligt. Ett vitt lår glänste till i ljuset hade fångat min uppmärksamhet. Jag kanske inte borde titta, men kunde inte låta bli. Jag lät blicken glida längs låret, upp över magen, smekte den svarta trekantsbehån, upp längs halsen till hennes läppar. Smala, särade. Där låg hon i sin perfektion, tänkte jag. En nästan ilsken tanke. Hon var perfekt trots det lilla blåmärket på smalbenet, trots att håret var tovigt och läppstiftet utsmetat. Hon låg där med halvslutna ögon och benen i vädret. Och Emil stod mellan dem. Naken, med sin hårda, svajande kuk redo." Första delen i den erotiska följetongen Mellan hennes lår.
ellauri217.html on line 382: Vittu muuten miten Sanomien tiedepl ärä oli taas vastenmielinen.Tieteen nimissä siinä argumentoidaan että GMO lasten suunnittelu on helt okej ja ryssät perisyntisiä miehittäjiä alkaen Pietarista ja päättyen Staliniin ja Putiniin. Typerä turkulaisämmä ei muista enää metrin halkoja. Niillä lämmitettiin ennen Debbin buduaaria. Lehden kiiltopaperi on yhtä limaista kuin sisällys.
ellauri217.html on line 390: Marina ei muka ollut ymmärtänyt mixi lemmenpesä piti puzata käytetyistä korzuista. Onxtää kaveri aivan vähälahjainen? Onhan se, taisiis oli. Spedelläkin oli enempi päässä älliä, olihan se dipl omi-insinööri eikä humanistiretku kuten Jörnykkä. Donner itse valmistui vuonna 1958 Helsingin yliopistosta filosofian maisteriksi pääaineinaan yleinen valtio-oppi ja pohjoismainen kirjallisuus sekä sivuaineina psykologia ja filosofia. Hän ei kuitenkaan harkinnut tieteellistä uraa. Tais tulla sevverta heikot paperit.
ellauri217.html on line 399: Jörkka jämentää Pertin äänellä, että Marina on äijä, se tahtoo monta rinnakkaista elämää, vanha kunnon Pät pl us Tupu Hupu ja Lupu yhtäällä ja suuhunpantavana pullava Natascha toisaalla. Pertti Pertti työnnä vielä sertti. Marika saa messinkiset kynttilänjalat muistoxi Pertin voimakkaasta jäntevästä penixestä.
ellauri217.html on line 630: 70-luvulla ei ollut geenitestejä. Eikä geenimuokattuja kersoja. Fallesmannin Arvo ja merikapteeni ottavat ylleen hassut essut ja rupeavat leikkimään Marjojen pl us pikku Moby Duckin kanssa hullunkurisia perheitä. All is well, loppupeleissä.
ellauri217.html on line 639: The five precepts (Sanskrit: pañcaśīla; Pali: pañcasīla) or five rules of training (Sanskrit: pañcaśikṣapada; Pali: pañcasikkhapada) is the most important system of morality for Buddhist lay peopl e. They constitute the basic code of ethics to be respected by lay followers of Buddhism. The precepts are commitments to abstain from killing living beings, stealing, sexual misconduct, lying and intoxication.
ellauri217.html on line 647: According to modern Jewish law, non-Jews (gentiles) are not obligated to convert to Judaism, but they are required to observe the Seven Laws of Noah to be assured of a pl ace in the World to Come (Olam Ha-Ba), the final reward of the righteous.The non-Jews that choose to follow the Seven Laws of Noah are regarded as "Righteous Gentiles" (Hebrew: חסידי אומות העולם, Chassiddei Umot ha-Olam: "Pious Peopl e of the World"). This is what Israel is enforcing on the West Bank and Gaza currently. The balls are in their court now, warn the Jews.
ellauri217.html on line 668: The earliest compl ete rabbinic version of the seven Noahide laws can be found in the Tosefta, as
ellauri217.html on line 680: According to the Genesis flood narrative, a deluge covered the whole world on account of violent corruption on the earth, killing every surface-dwelling creature except Noah, his wife, his sons, their wives, and the animals taken aboard the Ark. According to the biblical narrative, all modern humans are descendants of Noah, thus the name Noahide Laws refers to the laws that appl y to all of humanity. After the Flood, God sealed a covenant with Noah with just the following 2 admonitions as written in Genesis 9:4-6.
ellauri217.html on line 693: What has changed with the giving of the Torah is that now, it is the duty of the Jewish peopl e to bring the rest of the world to fulfill the Seven Laws of Noah.
ellauri217.html on line 707: The purpose of the meeting, according to Acts, was to resolve a disagreement in Antioch, which had wider impl ications than just circumcision, since circumcision is the "everlasting" sign of the Abrahamic covenant (Genesis 17:9–14). Some of the Pharisees who had become believers insisted that it was "needful to circumcise them, and to command [them] to keep the law of Moses" (KJV).
ellauri217.html on line 723: In conclusion, therefore, it appears that the least unsatisfactory solution of the compl icated textual and exegetical problems of the Apostolic Decree is to regard the fourfold decree as original (foods offered to idols, strangled meat, eating blood, and unchastity—whether ritual or moral), and to expl ain the two forms of the threefold decree in some such way as those suggested above. An extensive literature exists on the text and exegesis of the Apostolic Decree. According to Jacques Dupont, "Present day scholarship is practically unanimous in considering the 'Eastern' text of the decree as the only authentic text (in four items) and in interpreting its prescriptions in a sense not ethical but ritual (whatever that means)".
ellauri217.html on line 730: Rebbe Emden, in a remarkable apology for Christianity contained in his appendix to "Seder 'Olam" (pp. 32b-34b, Hamburg, 1752), gives it as his opinion that the original intention of Jesus, and especially of Paul, was to convert only the Gentiles to the seven moral laws of Noah and to let the Jews follow the Mosaic law—which expl ains the apparent contradictions in the New Testament regarding the laws of Moses and the Sabbath.
ellauri217.html on line 736: According to the 19th-century Roman Catholic Bishop Karl Josef von Hefele, the Apostolic Decree of the Jerusalem Council "has been obsolete for centuries in the West", though it is still recognized and observed by the Eastern Orthodox Church. Hypersensationalists, such as the 20th century Anglican E. W. Bullinger, would be another exampl e of a group that believes the decree (and everything before Acts 28) no longer appl ies.
ellauri219.html on line 33: KERS. PIPPURIN YXINÄISTEN SYDÄNTEN KERHOSOITINYHTYE play:none">Poppia
ellauri219.html on line 36: ploads/2017/08/beatles-5.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri219.html on line 58: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e8/Sgt-pepper%27s-peopl e.jpg/298px-Sgt-pepper%27s-peopl e.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri219.html on line 114: David Livingstone (missionary/expl orer)
ellauri219.html on line 118: George Bernard Shaw (pl aywright)
ellauri219.html on line 132: Shirley Templ e (child actress) – barely visible behind the wax models of John and Ringo, first of three appearances on the cover
ellauri219.html on line 143: Mahatma Gandhi was pl anned for this position, but was deleted prior to publication
ellauri219.html on line 146: Shirley Templ e (child actress) – second appearance on the cover.
ellauri219.html on line 152: VIDEO
ellauri219.html on line 163: Thelema on brittiläisen okkultistin Aleister Crowleyn vuonna 1904 Egyptissä perustama uskonto. Crowleya pidetään theleman profeettana Terry Pratchettin ohella. Nykyisin thelemaa harjoittaa ainakin Ordo Templ i Orientis. Theleman tärkein pyhä kirja on Crowleyn Liber AL vel Legis eli Lain kirja, jonka Crowleyn mukaan Achwas-niminen henki, aioni, saneli hänen Rose-vaimonsa kautta ("tuntuu jo lopettelevan"). Theleman harjoittajia kutsutaan "thelemiiteiksi".
ellauri219.html on line 180: The next day Jacot-Guillarmod and De Righi attempted to depose Crowley from expedition leadership. The argument could not be settled, and Jacot-Guillarmod, De Righi, and Pache decided to retreat from Camp V to Camp III. At 5 pm they left with four porters on a single rope, but a fall precipitated an avalanche that killed three porters as well as Alexis Pache. Peopl e in Camp V heard "frantic cries" and Reymond immediately descended to help, but Crowley stayed in his tent. That evening he wrote a letter to a Darjeeling newspaper stating that he had advised against the descent and that "a mountain 'accident' of this sort is one of the things for which I have no sympathy whatever". The next day Crowley passed the site of the accident without pausing nor speaking to the survivors and left on his own to Darjeeling, where he took the expedition funds, which mostly had been paid by Jacot-Guillarmod. The latter would get at least some of his money back after threatening to make public some of Crowley's pornographic poetry.
ellauri219.html on line 187: Mae West initially refused to allow her image to appear on the artwork. She was, after all, one of the most famous bombshells from Hollywood’s Golden Age and felt that she would never be in a lonely hearts club. However, after The Beatles personally wrote to her expl aining that they were all fans, she agreed to let them use her image. In 1978, Ringo Starr (No.63) returned the favor when he appeared in West’s final movie, 1978’s Sextette. The film also featured a cover version of the “White Album” song “Honey Pie.” P.S. Mae Westillä oli melko mahtavat maitomunat ja varmaan herkullinen mesipiiras. Vaikka jäävät kyllä 2:si Savonlinnan Paskalle.
ellauri219.html on line 196: His parents divorced before he was 10, and he lived with various relatives over the next decade. His British-born father, Myron (Mickey) Schneider, was a shoe clerk; they saw each other very infrequently. His mother, Sally Marr (legal name Sadie Schneider, born Sadie Kitchenberg), was a stage performer and dancer and had an enormous influence on Bruce's career. He defiantly convinced his ship's medical officer that he was experiencing homosexual urges toward him, leading to his dishonorable discharge in July 1945. However, he had not admitted to or been found guilty of any breach of naval regulations, and successfully appl ied to change his discharge to "Under Honorable Conditions ... by reason of unsuitability for the naval service". At Hanson's diner Bruce met Joe Anjovis (named by his taste) who had a profound influence on Bruce's approach to comedy.
ellauri219.html on line 198: Branded a "sick comic", Bruce was essentially blacklisted from television, and when he did appear, thanks to sympathetic fans like Hefner and Steve Allen, it was with great concessions to Broadcast Standards and Practices. Jokes that might offend, like an extremely boring routine on airpl ane-glue-sniffing teenagers that was done live for The Steve Allen Show in 1959, had to be typed out and pre-approved by network officials. On his debut on Allen's show, Bruce made an unscripted comment on the recent marriage of Elizabeth Taylor to Eddie Fisher, wondering, "Will Elizabeth Taylor become bat mitzvahed?"
ellauri219.html on line 204: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/c/c3/Lenny_Bruce_Mugshot_4-27-63.jpg" />
ellauri219.html on line 250: Along with Huntz Hall (No.13), Leo Gorcey was one of The Bowery Boys, a group of on-screen hoodlums who grew out of The Dead End Kids and The East Side Kids. Their movie franchise ran throughout the 40s and 50s, and totaled 48 films. As the gang’s leader, Gorcey was a prototype street thug who set the templ ate for many to follow, though he refused to let The Beatles use his image unless they paid him a fee, which was declined.
ellauri219.html on line 255: A fellow Bowery Boy, Huntz Hall was known for pl aying the putz of the group, Horace DeBussy “Sach” Jones.
ellauri219.html on line 260: Born in Italy in 1870, Simon Rodia emigrated to the United States with his brother when he was 15. Living in various pl aces for the next 35 years, Rodia finally settled in the Watts district of Los Angeles in 1920, and began constructing the Watts Towers the following year. Consisting of 17 interconnected sculptures, the project took Rodia 33 years to compl ete.
ellauri219.html on line 265: Dylan and The Beatles influenced each other throughout the 60s, each spurring the other on to making music that pushed boundaries and reshaped what was thought possible of the simpl e “pop song.” It was Dylan who convinced John Lennon (No.62) to write more personal songs in the shape of “Help!,” while The Beatles showed Bob what could be achieved with a full band behind him, helping the latter “go electric” in 1965. It was with George Harrison (No.65), however, that Dylan struck up the longest-lasting friendship; the two pl ayed together often in the years that followed, forming The Traveling Wilburys and guesting on each other’s projects.
ellauri219.html on line 285: A beloved Welsh poet who died in 1953, The Beatles had all been fans of Dylan Thomas’ poetry by the time it came to creating the Sgt. Pepper’s artwork. “We all used to like Dylan Thomas,” Paul McCartney (No.64) later recalled. “I read him a lot. I think that John started writing because of him.” The late producer George Martin was also a fan, and even created a musical version of Thomas’ radio pl ay, Under Milk Wood, in 1988.
ellauri219.html on line 309: American artist Wallace Berman more than earned his pl ace on the album cover: his pioneering “assemblage art” took a three-dimensional approach to the collage style that Peter Blake excelled in, and is an influence that can be felt on the Sgt. Pepper’s design.
ellauri219.html on line 344: The larger one with the mustache from Laurel And Hardy, Oliver pl ayed the irascible foil to the hapl ess Stan (No.28). A recording by the duo (“The Trail Of The Lonesome Pine”) reached No.2 in the UK singles chart in December 1975.
ellauri219.html on line 369: A friend of John Lennon’s (No.62) dating back to their time studying at Liverpool College Of Art, Stuart Sutcliffe was The Beatles’ original bassist. While the group were living in Hamburg and pl aying around the city’s clubs, Sutcliffe met photographer Astrid Kirchherr, who gave The Beatles their distinctive early 60s haircuts. Sutcliffe left the group in order to enroll in the Hamburg College Of Art, but his career was tragically cut short when he died, aged 21, from a brain aneurysm.
ellauri219.html on line 374: On the opposite side of the gathering to the first wax dummy (No.24), this second dummy takes its pl ace next to Stuart Sutcliffe (No.35)
ellauri219.html on line 384: Designed by George Petty, like the Vargas Girls (No.11), Petty Girls were pin-up paintings that appeared in Esquire, between 1933 and 1956, and also found a home on the front of World War II fighter pl anes – notably on the B-17 fighter jet nicknamed Memphis Belle.
ellauri219.html on line 399: A pl aywright, novelist, and poet, Oscar Wilde left no shortage of aphorisms for which he is remembered, along with the novel The Picture Of Dorian Gray and pl ays such as The Importance Of Being Earnest and An Ideal Husband.
ellauri219.html on line 404: A Hollywood heartthrob of the 30s, 40s, and 50s, Tyrone Power was known for starring as the titular hero in the swashbuckling adventure film The Mark Of Zorro, though he also pl ayed the role of outlaw cowboy Jesse James, and starred in musicals, romantic comedies, and war movies.
ellauri219.html on line 409: An American artist known for large sculptures that pl ay with light and space, Larry Bell first made his mark with a series of “shadowboxes” constructed in the 60s, and has since gone on to receive acclaim for his wide-ranging work, including the Vapor Drawings of the 80s and a subsequent range of Mirage Drawings.
ellauri219.html on line 414: It’s probably fair to say that Dr. Livingstone was to geographic expl oration what The Beatles were to sonic innovation: fearless, ever questing, and mapping out new territories for the world. The famous “Dr. Livingstone, I presume?” saying remains in common use today, and can be traced back to a meeting between Livingstone and expl orer Henry Morton Stanley, who’d been sent on an expedition to find the former, who had been missing for six years. Livingstone was discovered in the town of Ujiji, in what is now known as Tanzania.
ellauri219.html on line 434: George Bernard Shaw was an Irish pl aywright who helped shape modern theatre. The first person to receive both a Nobel Prize (in 1925, for Literature) and an Oscar (in 1939, for Best Adapted Screenpl ay, for Pygmalion). His works continue to be staged in the 21st Century.
ellauri219.html on line 449: A discipl e of Sir Mahatavara Babaji (No.27), Sir Lahiri Mahasaya learned the discipl ine of Kriya Yoga in 1861, and subsequently passed the teachings down to Sir Yukteswar Girl (No.1), who in turn, passed them on to Sir Paramahansa Yogananda (No.33), of whom Mahasaya said, “As a spiritual engine, he will carry many souls to God’s Kingdom.”
ellauri219.html on line 454: Speaking to the BBC in 1965, John Lennon (No.62) declared his love for Alice In Wonderland and Alice Through The Looking Glass, revealing, “I usually read those two about once a year, because I still like them.” It’s perhaps no surprise, then, that the man who wrote the poem “The Walrus And The Carpenter,” which influenced Lennon’s lyrics for “I Am The Walrus,” is given a prominent displ ay on the Sgt. Pepper’s album cover. P.S. Carroll oli pedofiilien ihan terävintä kärkeä.
ellauri219.html on line 459: Immortalized in the 1962 film Lawrence Of Arabia, in which he was pl ayed by Peter O’Toole, TE Lawrence was a British archaeologist and military officer who became a liaison to the Arab forces during the Arab Revolt of 1916 to 1918. His 1922 book, Seven Pillars Of Wisdom, recounted his experiences during the war and laid the foundations for much of his legend.
ellauri219.html on line 473: 58, 71, and 73: Shirley Templ e
ellauri219.html on line 475: The very definition of a “tripl e threat,” Shirley Templ e was an actress, singer, and dancer who became a child star in the 30s. She also appears on the Sgt. Pepper album cover three times over, her hair poking out from between the wax figures of John Lennon (No.62) and Ringo Starr (No.63), and also standing in front of the model of Diana Dors (No.70). There’s also a cloth figure of the star off to the far right, wearing a jumper emblazoned with the slogan “Welcome The Rolling Stones.”
ellauri219.html on line 483: Respl endent in their military chic (or should that be military psych?) garb, John (No.62), Ringo (No.63), Paul (No.64), and George (No.65) presented themselves as Sgt. Pepper’s Lonely Hearts Club Band, looking like a psychedelic brass band brandishing a French horn, trumpet, cor anglais, and flute, respectively. Like the album cover itself, The Beatles’ Sgt Pepper costumes would become some of the most iconic band outfits ever, instantly recognizable and forever woven into the fabric of our culture.
ellauri219.html on line 488: Like Shirley Templ e (Nos.58, 71, and 73), Bobby Breen was a child star of the 30s. After enlisting in the military and entertaining the troops during World War II he became a nightclub singer, and, in 1964, even made some recordings for Berry Gordy’s Motown label.
ellauri219.html on line 498: Famed for his non-violent protests and for leading the movement for Indian independence from British rule, Mahatma Gandhi was ultimately removed from the Sgt. Pepper album cover due to concerns that the use of his image would cause offense to the peopl e of India.
ellauri219.html on line 528: Along with the stone figure (No.77) that can be seen below the feet of the Shirley Templ e doll (No.73), the stone figure of a girl (No.76) was one of a number of statues that John Lennon (No.62) and George Harrison (No.65) brought from their homes for inclusion on the cover. The most prominent of these is the bust positioned to the right of the bass drum (No.78), which came from Lennon’s house Kenwood, in Weybridge, Surrey, where he lived from 1964 to 1969.
ellauri219.html on line 553: Placed beneath Sonny Liston (No.54) is a purpl e velvet snake most likely to have been one of Jann Haworth’s cloth designs.
ellauri219.html on line 577: Nyt Lillokin siteeraa katollista pensasmystikkaa. Niitä on kuultu jo aivan simona. Tuomas Kempiläistä, Simone Weiliä, se yx kaveri jostain Hollannista jota Huishaismanni fanitti jonka nimeä ei löydy, jne jne. Huysmans jäi maitojunaan 1871 sodasta kun sille tuli dysenteria eli pl ödät housuun. Se kuoli izeaiheutettuun suusyöpään paljon myöhemmin.
ellauri219.html on line 583: At Princeton, Rawls was influenced by Norman Malcolm, Ludwig Wittgenstein's dumb student. During his last two years at Princeton, he "became deepl y concerned with theology and its doctrines." He considered attending a seminary to study for the Episcopal priesthood and wrote an "intensely religious senior thesis (BI)." In his 181-page long thesis titled "Meaning of Sin and Faith," Rawls attacked Pelagianism because it "would render the Cross of Christ to no effect." His argument was partly drawn from Karl Marx's book On the Jewish Question, which criticized the idea that natural inequality in ability could be a just determiner of the distribution of wealth in society. Even after Rawls became an atheist, many of the anti-Pelagian arguments he used were repeated in A Theory of Justice. Pelagianism is a heretical Christian theological position that holds that the original sin did not taint human nature and that humans by divine grace have free will to achieve human perfection. Pelagius (c. 355 – c. 420 AD), an ascetic and philosopher from the British Isles, taught that God could not command believers to do the impossible, and therefore it must be possible to satisfy all divine commandments. He also taught that it was unjust to punish one person for the sins of another; therefore, infants are born blameless. Pelagius accepted no excuse for sinful behavior and taught that all Christians, regardless of their station in life, should live unimpeachable, sinless lives, or else... Se oli tollanen humanisti, mitä Hippo aivan erityisesti inhosi. Vittu eihän sitten mitään kirkkoa ja pappeja edes tarvittaisi. Jeesus jäisi työttömäxi, Jahve eläkkeelle.
ellauri219.html on line 592: Following the surrender of Japan, Rawls became part of General MacArthur's occupying army and was promoted to sergeant. But he became disillusioned with the military when he saw the aftermath of the atomic blast in Hiroshima. Rawls then disobeyed an order to discipl ine a fellow soldier, "believing no punishment was justified," and was "demoted back to a private." Disenchanted, he left the military in January 1946.
ellauri219.html on line 594: Rawls received his Ph.D. from Princeton in 1950 after compl eting a doct
ellauri219.html on line 597: In his autobiographical essay, “On My Religion,” Rawls expl ains why he abandoned his orthodox Christian beliefs in spite of the deepl y religious temperament that informed his life and writings. In particular, he recounts how his personal experiences during the Second World War, and especially his awareness of the Holocaust, led him to question whether prayer was possible. “To interpret history as expressing God’s will, God’s will must accord with the most basic ideas of justice as we know them. For what else can the most basic justice be? Thus, I soon came to reject the idea of the supremacy of the divine will as [like the Holocaust] also hideous and evil.” Furthermore, by studying the history of the Inquisition Rawls came to “think of the denial of religious freedom and liberty of conscience as a very great evil,” such that “it makes the claims of the Popes to infallibility impossible to accept.” Finally, his reading of Jean Bodin’s thoughts about toleration led him to claim that religions should be “each reasonable, and accept the idea of public reason and its idea of the domain of the political.” Against this background, it is no wonder that Rawls considers the very concept of religious truth as authoritarian and intolerant, and the ensuing persecution of dissenters as the curse of Christianity.
ellauri219.html on line 599: Pope Benedict’s basic answer is that, although modern principl es of political freedom, democracy, equality, and reasonable argument are to be affirmed, a free state rests on “pre-political moral foundations,” which serve as normative points of reference for every regime and must be held in common by all religions and secular world-views. This answer reflects the fact that Pope Benedict disagrees with Rawls on at least two fundamental issues, which constitute the core of the debate between them and to which I shall refer regularly in the course of my analysis. In the first pl ace, Pope Benedict does not share Rawls’s trust in fundamental human reasonableness as a guarantee for political fairness. For Rawls, persons are reasonable when they are ready to propose principl es and standards as fair terms of cooperation and to abide by them willingly, given the assurance that others will likewise do so. Those norms they view as reasonable for everyone to accept and therefore as justifiable to them; and they are ready to discuss the fair terms that others propose.
ellauri219.html on line 601: This idea of reasonableness informs the whole project of Rawls’s political liberalism, because “the form and content of this reason … are part of the idea of democracy itself.” In contrast, Pope Benedict, although consistently stressing the importance of reason in all human affairs, is much more pessimistic about Rawls’s claim that human beings, who are always children of their own time and cultural situation, are reasonable enough to provide the general principl es or standards that are necessary for specifying fair cooperation/competition. Joo olen kyllä Pentin kannalla siinä että nää termiittiapinat on aivan vitun tyhmiä, täysin beyond redemption. Ei ne ole toisilleen hyvänsuopia ellei niillä izellä mene paremmin. Mitä uutta kissimirrit tässä? Ei mitään, samaa paskanjauhantaa.
ellauri219.html on line 631: What's New Pussycat? is a 1965 screwball comedy film directed by Clive Donner, written by Woody Allen in his first produced screenpl ay, and starring Allen in his acting debut, along with Peter Sellers, Peter O'Toole, Romy Schneider, Capucine, Paula Prentiss, and Ursula Undress.
ellauri219.html on line 639: Meanwhile Carole's pl an seems to work and Michael asks to marry her. She agrees and they settle on marrying within the week. She moves in but Michael finds fidelity impossible. When a second "fiancee" arrives, she knows the worst. Simultaneously, a woman parachutes into Michael's open-top sports car and he ends up sleeping with her, also meeting other conquests at the bar. This takes pl ace at a small country hotel, where all parties materialise in the format of a typical French farce. Some are checked in, but most just appear. This includes Carole's parents who wander the corridors, causing Michael to jump from room to room. A rumour has also started locally that an orgy is taking pl ace so side characters such as the petrol station attendant also start to appear. Carole appears and wishes to see Michael's room. As they speak, all the other participants chase each other around in the background. Fassbinder's wife tracks him down.
ellauri219.html on line 641: Everyone ends in Michael's room with most of the females half-naked. The police arrive and form a line to Anna—Dr. Fassbender's wife—who charges in operatic Valkyrie costume, compl ete with a spear. They all escape to a go-kart circuit. They leave the circuit and go first to a farmyard then through narrow village streets still on the go-karts then back to the circuit.
ellauri219.html on line 643: After a mayor marries Michael and Carole in a civil marriage ceremony, the coupl e are signing the marriage certificate when Michael calls the young female registrar "Pussycat", infuriating Carole. They leave and Fassbinder attempts to court her instead. End of story. Fun, or what?
ellauri219.html on line 673: Toinen impl isiittinen viittaus kristilliseen dualismiin tulee heti kirjan ensimmäisessä luvussa, missä hän alustaa ”hengelliselle ystävälleen herrassa” seuraavasti:
ellauri219.html on line 705: Se on ihmisen perustarve, yksi niistä. Sen hän jättää sanomatta, että mantrastakin on syytä irrottautua, mutta kyllä sekin impl isiittisesti ilmenee sanamuodosta ”jos näin pysyt lujana, jättää ajatuksesikin sinut rauhaan”.
ellauri219.html on line 707: Lisäksi tässä on selostettu pähkinänkuoressa meditaation mekanismi, vaikka sanaa itseään ei mainitakaan. Vielä kiinnittyy huomio siihen, että sanalle ”mietiskely” on annettu se sisältö, jonka minäkin soisin sille annettavan; sehän ei missään tapauksessa ole meditaation synonyymi, vaan pikemminkin sen antonyymi. Meditaatio ei ole miettimisen nimellä tunnettua aivotoimintaa, vaan sen lakkaamista! Ei mitään aattelua, pohtimista tai aprikoimista, vaan pöntön tyhjentämistä kuten Akulla, jonka puhekupl assa lukee vain (tyhjää).
ellauri219.html on line 741: Patañjali learned Yoga along with seven other discipl es from the great Yogic Guru Nandhi Deva, as stated in Tirumular's Tirumandiram (Tantra 1). Liirumlaarum rillumarei, teedledee ja teedledum.
ellauri219.html on line 749: I teach World of Ideas and courses on Asian religions in the Department of Philosophy and Religious Studies. In my research, I'm interested in expl oring young boys and girls In Thailand. Currently, I’m working on two major projects. The first is the preparation of my first book, The Snake and the Mongoose, for publication with Oxford University Press. The second is ongoing research on the Royal Court Brahmans of Thailand. I also have a side interest in the philosophy of prepubertal physics that I indulge when I have the time.
ellauri219.html on line 756: The theme, if the present interpreter be right, is the great regeneration, the birth of the spiritual from the psychical man: the same theme which Paul so wisely and eloquently set forth in writing to his discipl es in Corinth, the theme of all mystics in all lands: oka kyljessä, minnekä se tuikata?
ellauri219.html on line 764: Se vaatii tiukkaa anaalikontrollia. Chasten, purify and restore the mispl aced powers. Talk to the hand, look deep into the dark star. Partake in the wisdom and glory of a slippery cod. Pane salvaa perätilaan. Puhdistu synnin Pauloista ja Paavaleista.
ellauri219.html on line 771: In the practice of meditation, a beginning may be made by fixing the attention upon some external object, such as a sacred image or picture, or a part of a book of devotion. In the second stage, one passes from the outer object to an inner pondering upon its lessons. The third stage is the inspiration, the heightening of the spiritual will, which results from this pondering. The fourth stage is the realization of one’s spiritual being, as enkindled by this meditation. An interior state of spiritual consciousness is reached, which is called “the cloud of things knowable”. Tietämättömyyden pilvi. (tyhjää) puhekupl assa.
ellauri219.html on line 792: Why are so many peopl e biased against America?
ellauri219.html on line 794: I am utterly, compl etely, over-the-top astonished that the answers offered to date are missing the point. Including from peopl e whose judgement I respect.
ellauri219.html on line 796: No it is not because of Trump. Peopl e outside of America slagged off the US in the Clinton years, and the Nixon years, and the Eisenhower years. The negative perception was cemented in the 60s, and everything since has been confirmation bias. So what had happened? Two obviously invasive lost wars in Indochina and nasty machinations here and there, Middle East and South America in particular. Pretty obvious what the fuckheads were (and are) up to: world conquest for the cause of American capitalism, nothing less.
ellauri219.html on line 798: No it is not because of the clash in values between American individualism and libertarianism, and the rest of the West’s social democracy and collectivism. That’s a contributing factor among those with enough cultural affinity and exposure to get to know how the US ticks, which maybe expl ains some of the last decade or so, with the Internet. But again, the “Death to Amreeka” crowds, the sneering at the unsophisticated doughboys, the dismissal of American culture—all that predated that deep familiarity by decades. The discovery of the substantive cultural mismatches were again a late addition and confirmation bias. (How I like the scientific sound of it: confirmation bias.)
ellauri219.html on line 803: Hegemony means that the rest of the world is going to resent you, no matter what you do, because they cannot get away from being sat upon by you, and peopl e don’t like someone else’s ideas and culture and politics and culture wars impinging on their own.
ellauri219.html on line 805: That’s why when peopl e are outright nasty towards bigoted Americans, they don’t think they’re doing anything wrong. Because as far as they’re concerned, they’re punching back. Serves ’em right, they’re privileged on everybody else's expense.
ellauri219.html on line 809: The soft power means that they aren’t necessarily going to hate you outright: Americans did not bomb Britain out of an Empire, they just took over their dominions, whatever they got up to in Vietnam or Iraq. But peopl e know that you’re the obese gorilla, even if you constantly tell them that you are virtuous and noble. Which will make them all the more ready to pounce on you, when you inevitably fall short of your virtuous and noble rhetoric. That virtuous and noble rhetoric made the resentment inevitable.
ellauri219.html on line 811: Peopl e don’t expect better of an imperial Russia, or an imperial Britain, or an imperial France, or an imperial Germany. Some of them took on the blurb of the white man's burden, but I doubt peopl e were really taken in by it anywhere except the U.S. With the possible exception of the Brits.
ellauri219.html on line 815: You’re hearing it even now, in the tedious whataboutism from the Global South (the new enemy, now that Global North is practically ours) about Ukraine. Peopl e expect Putin’s Russia to elbow neighbours aside in pursuit of security. That’s what imperial Athens did to Melos. They don’t expect any better. But America? America said it was better. So what? Who in their right mind would believe them? They are a nation of used car salesmen. It still does, with its advocacy of human rights. That’s why the non-stop whataboutist refrain from them is that America is hypocritical. Which it is, to a fault.
ellauri219.html on line 817: The real tragedy here being, that America has been sincere in its naive, Wilsonian vision of a better world. They were, in fact, high on their own suppl y. Well the suckers were, the same ones as were taken in by the American Dream.
ellauri219.html on line 830: You’re not, but you’re the culture with the megaphone. Peopl e are paying disproportionate attention to your stupidity. And when stupid suckers elsewhere discover that the streets of Hollywood are not paved with gold, they truly are crestfallen, to an extent they wouldn’t be with Moscow, or Paris. Just as they were crestfallen to discover that the States was just another empire after all.
ellauri219.html on line 832: And there is something… “gee willywickers” about the way Truth Justice and The American Way have been inflated in American mass culture, quite pl ausibly rooted in that class insecurity, that makes outside cultural elites (and the peopl e that follow after them) reflexively sneer, once they realise the foundations are rotten. Add to this the ludicrous fact that America has no high culture. These are disappointed suitors: they’re not going to console themselves over the emptiness of Scrooge McDuck by turning to Wilt Whatman. Who was no better off than Scrooge by way of civility.
ellauri219.html on line 851: Francois Marie Arouet "Voltaire", French author and pl aywright (1694-1778).
ellauri219.html on line 859: Pierre Simon de Lapl ace, French mathematician and astronomer (1749-1827)
ellauri219.html on line 895: George Bernard Shaw, English pl aywright (1856-1950)
ellauri219.html on line 923: Sir Charles Spencer "Charlie Chapl in", British born actor, director and producer. (1889-1977)
ellauri219.html on line 954: The police blanketed the 23-year-old woman and asked her questions to determine her state of mind. She was unable to answer who she was, what day it was, or what kind of moron the President of the United States was. She was able to expl ain that she was “bipolar,” but though she was on “prescription medication,” she was uncertain if she had been taking it recently. A neighbor gave her some clothes, and she was taken to jail on charges of open or gross lewdness. The dog meanwhile was taken stark naked into the custody of Animal Control on similar charges and executed fortwith without trial. "We had to let him go", said the sheriff ruefully.
ellauri219.html on line 958: Yeaw said, “He was having sex with the dog, it was disgusting.” Peterson said in court that he was “sexually aroused from accidental contact with the animal’s rear,” but insisted that happened as he was “just pl aying with the dog.”
ellauri219.html on line 962: While those who never had sex with animals or done drugs may criticize Kara’s, Jordan's and their dogs' lewd behaviors as if they were evil — and this, perhaps, according to Christian morality as they interpret it — anybody who has actually suffered from lewdness puts this to the lie and knows that such behavior is not a moral issue, but a chemical imbalance. Evidently the words of Jesus to “Judge not lest you be judged,” make little impression on such folk, who pretend to themselves that if their worst, most embarrassing moments were made into headlines in the papers, they would do just fine. Even if they themselves had nothing to be embarrassed about in all their life of adventures and misadventures, they ought to have compassion for those who struggle with greater problems than their own. “Let Judge Hicks who is without sin cast the first stone,” is another saying of Jesus that appl ies to those who would judge and condemn an easy target.
ellauri219.html on line 969: Eisensteinillä ei ollut leffaa nimeltä Underworld. There have been debates about Eisenstein's sexuality, with a film covering Eisenstein's homosexuality allegedly running into difficulties in Russia. Eisenstein confessed his asexuality to his close friend Marie Seton: "Those who say that I am homosexual are wrong. I have never noticed and do not notice this. If I was homosexual I would say so, directly. But the whole point is that I have never experienced a homosexual attraction, even towards Grisha, despite the fact I have some bisexual tendency in the intellectual dimension like, for exampl e, Balzac or Zola." Eisenstein joi paljon maitoa. Maito oli silloin pulloissa, muistatko? Hän oli menninkäismäinen miesoletettu.
ellauri219.html on line 1006: Senkö tautta taiteilijat taiteilevat ja kynäilijät kynäilevät että niillä olis yleisö jonka edessä ne voivat keekoilla ja pyytää läpyjä? No senpä tietysti, pl us että kuuluisan on tosi helppo saada häpyä, kuten Raju Panola tietää kertoa. Kaikenlainen kuuluisuuden tavoittelu lähtee samoista narsistisista lähtökohdista. Ei kai muuten voisi ollakaan.
ellauri219.html on line 1010: Rachel Kushner (born 1968) is an American writer, known for her novels Telex from Cuba (2008), The Flamethrowers (2013), and The Mars Room (2018). She looks like a little rodent. Kushner was born in Eugene, Oregon, the daughter of two Communist scientists, one Jewish and one Unitarian, whom she has called "deepl y unconventional peopl e from the beatnik generation." One of her influences is the American novelist Don DeLillo. Big surprise. Rachel is one of America's most shortlisted writers.
ellauri219.html on line 1012: Underworld is a novel, quite simpl y, about what was experienced in the United States in the second half of the 20th century. An era shaped by the advent and then cancellation of the Bretton Woods agreement. Nuclear proliferation. The withering away and relocation of American manufacturing, and the rise of global capitalism. Jazz. The Cuban missile crisis (through the voice, as DeLillo has it, of the smirking standup comedian Lenny Bruce). Civil tights. The CIA. Bombs on university campuses. Artists on New York rooftops, and around them, the old industrial framework of bygone city life, something aesthetic and exotic, either marvelled at or ignored, take your pick.
ellauri219.html on line 1014: As a child of the 20th century, I suppose, this book sorta speaks to me. Talk to the hand. It precipitates into meaning historical movies I’ve seen. Don is like Wilt Whatman who addressed, in the poem “Crossing Brooklyn Ferry”, the peopl e of the future. Sublime but ironic.
ellauri219.html on line 1022: Cheever opetti yliopistoissa luovaa kirjoittamista. Hänen teostensa aiheena ovat varakkaat mutta henkisesti köyhät keskiluokkaiset ihmiset. Kuvauksessa on sekä myötätuntoa että purevaa moralisointia. Cheever says, famously, “the task of the American writer is not to describe the misgivings of a woman taken in adultery as she looks out of the window at the rain but to describe four hundred peopl e under the lights reaching for a foul ball”. Kumpi on tomppelimpaa, sietää kysyä
ellauri219.html on line 1024: The American sublime, as Harold Bloom has said, “is always also an American irony”. Jayne Mansfield's bumper bullets. Peopl e hugging their pit bulls sexually and getting 15 years for it. Do you know what Teilhard de Chardin called the “noosphere”? Not the foggiest. I think what Rachel has in mind here is the Internet. Who is or was Teilhard anyway? Teilhard was mentioned by Pynchon, see album 69 . Not a very memorable character apparently. Tässä Pierren tärkeimpiä läppiä, aika heruttavia:
ellauri219.html on line 1032: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c1/Illustration_of_Peking_Man_%28Sinanthropus_Pekinen_Sis%29_Wellcome_M0001113.jpg/800px-Illustration_of_Peking_Man_%28Sinanthropus_Pekinen_Sis%29_Wellcome_M0001113.jpg" />
ellauri220.html on line 33:
RADIO CITY Music Hall play:none">Sätkytystä
ellauri220.html on line 71: VIDEO
ellauri220.html on line 81: Mixi Wilt kumitti sitä 20vee myöhemmin? Ahaa, Brooklyn Bridge valmistui. Walt Whitman wrote "Crossing Brooklyn Ferry" before the construction of the Brooklyn Bridge (which was compl eted in 1883). 50v tuli täyteen Wilhon matkustaessa itään päin, 100v suunnilleen Löllön pesispelin aikoihin. 150v synttäri olis ollut joskus Irakin invaasion ja pankkikriisin välimailla.
ellauri220.html on line 102: He admits that sometimes, evil thoughts cross his mind. The "old knot of contrariety" the poet has experienced refers to Satan and his evil influence on man, which creates the condition of contraries, of moral evil and good in human life. The poet suffered from these evil influences, as have all men. So, the poet impl ies, do not feel alone because you have been this way — one must accept both the pure and the impure elements of life. A young man's penis in your arse is just one of those eternal things. They come and go just like the Brooklyn ferry. The reference to fusion ("which fuses me into you now") is the basic ideal the poet sought in the beginning. He reiterates the eternal connection between all human beings. Fuck the rest. We must revel in our man-made surroundings, for our relationship with our environment is the ticket to achieving spirituality and fulfillment. He also uses the theater as a metaphor to represent the difference between public life and private life. He acknowledges that he has a sinful streak - but in society, everyone pl ays a role. The speaker's tone in the poem is honest but also grateful. By appreciating the small things in his life, he feels like a part of something bigger. Wiltin pikku veitikka oli ehkä ammoin wilttaantunut, mutta sen mustalla ystävällä oli something bigger. Veijarilla oli varsin vaikuttava heijari.
ellauri220.html on line 104: The major image in the poem is the ferry. It symbolizes continual movement, backward and forward, a universal piston like motion in space and time. The ferry moves on, from a point of land, through water, to another point of land. Land and water thus form part of the symbolistic pattern of the poem. Land symbolizes the physical; water symbolizes the spiritual. The circular flow from the physical to the spiritual connotes the dual nature of the universe. Dualism, in philosophy, means that the world is ultimately composed of, or expl icable in terms of, two basic entities, such as mind and matter, yin and yang. From a moral point of view, it means that there are two mutually antagonistic principl es in the universe — dick and cunt, good and evil. In Whitman's view, both the mind and the spirit are realities and matter is only a means which enables man to realize this truth. His world is dominated by a sense of good, and evil has a very subservient pl ace in it. Man, in Whitman's world, while overcoming the duality of the universe, desires fusion with the sheboy. In this attempt, man tries to transcend the boundaries of space and time, never letting off that dear piston like movement, in and out, in and out.
ellauri220.html on line 130: 1980-luvun seksisymboli oli terävänenäinen kirvesleukainen malli ja poptähti Samantha Fucks. Myös lujaleukaista popl aulaja Madonnaa pidettiin seksisymbolina, ja nenänsä pilannut Michael Jackson oli 1980-luvun miespuolinen seksisymboli. Nykyajan julkkismaailman seksisymboleita ovat muun muassa näyttelijättäret suurisuinen Angelina Jolie, vinosuinen Brad Kuk ja vaimolleen ilkeä rimpula Johnny Depp.
ellauri220.html on line 154: plus.pbnetcdn.com/assets/content/photo/gallery/premium/201203/11210/images/177228/177228_main.jpg?cb=2&nvb=20140915124041&nva=20140917164041&hash=0a849ca19880641ca3588" height="500px" />
ellauri220.html on line 159: plicit.bing.net%2Fth%3Fid%3DOIP.SOnM1Ezbp7h7AnNkyl5hwAHaFF%26pid%3DApi&f=1" />
ellauri220.html on line 166: Svenskanin lavalla Mansfield muun muassa soitti viulua varsin taitavasti. Mansfield oli esiintymisajankohtana viidennellä kuukaudella raskaana, minkä povipommina tunnettu tähti halusi tuon ajan lehtitietojen mukaan peitellä runsailla pl yymeillä. Tytär Mariska Hargitay syntyi 23. tammikuuta 1964. Mariska is not half the dish her mother was. Blame Mickey, he was not a pretty face though muscular.
ellauri220.html on line 236: Detwiler Detwiler is Nick Shay's boss at the waste-management pl ant.
ellauri220.html on line 280: Bobby Thomson Bobby Thomson is the Giants pl ayer who hit the home run that became known as the "Shot Heard Round the World."
ellauri220.html on line 283: Vito Vito is Nick Shay's high school buddy who lends Nick his uncle's license pl ates for the stolen car.
ellauri220.html on line 293: used by African Americans, mainly in the 1960s and 1970s, to refer to a white person. From James Baldwin's pl ay, Blues For Mister Charlie.
ellauri220.html on line 295: (U.S.) white peopl e, originally and still particularly used to refer to poor white peopl e from the American South.
ellauri220.html on line 298: white peopl e, especially older white men - based on the appearance of their faces.
ellauri220.html on line 302: (AUS) Aboriginal (Koori) term for white peopl e – derived from Governor / Gubbanah
ellauri220.html on line 318: (U.S.) a white person (southerner). This word was coined in the 19th century by Southern black peopl e to refer to poor white peopl e.
ellauri220.html on line 334: (US) a black person. Once generally accepted as inoffensive, this word is now considered disrespectful by some. The National Association for the Advancement of Colored Peopl e (NAACP) continues to use its full name unapologetically. This is not to be confused with the term "person of color" which is the preferred term for collectively referring to all non-white peopl e.
ellauri220.html on line 336: (US & UK) originally used by Europeans/white peopl e as a pejorative term for a black person. Possibly from Portuguese barracos, a building constructed to hold slaves for sale (1837). The term (though still also used in its original sense) is commonly used today by African or Black Americans towards members of the same race who are perceived to pander/kowtow to white peopl e; to be a 'sellout'; to hate themselves; or to "collud[e] with racism for personal gain." It is often used against black conservatives or Republicans (similar to Uncle Tom and coconut).
ellauri220.html on line 340: Eggpl ant
ellauri220.html on line 367: (South Africa, Zimbabwe, & Zambia) a term, used among white peopl e, for a black person. The term derives from muntu, the singular of Bantu.
ellauri220.html on line 371: (International) a black person. From the word negro, which means the color black in numerous languages. Diminutive appellations include Nigg and Nigz. Over time, the terms nigga and niggaz (pl ural) have come to be frequently used between some African or black diaspora without the negative associations of nigger. Considered very offensive and typically censored as "the n-word" even in reference to its use. The terms niggress, negress, and nigette are feminized formulations of the term.
ellauri220.html on line 388: (US) 19th century term for black peopl e.
ellauri220.html on line 392: a term for a black person, first recorded in 1928, from the pl aying cards suit.
ellauri220.html on line 407: Ensimmäinen ja viimeinen tilaisuus lähes aidon demokratian testaamiseen ryssissä oli vuoden 1996 presidentinvaaleissa. Tärkein vaaleihin liittyvä kysymys oli, valitaanko Jeltsin toiselle kaudelle ja saako hän näin mahdollisuuden jatkaa markkinatalouden rakentamista vai tuleeko valtaan kommunistipuolueen puheenjohtaja Zjuganov, jolla oli laaja kannatus. Koska riski Zjuganovin valinnalle oli suuri, oligarkit lahjoittivat valtavat määrät rupl ia Jeltsinin vaalikassaan. Sen lisäksi kassaan virtasi miljoonia dollareita myös länsimaista, jotka pelkäsivät Zjuganovin vievän maan takaisin neuvostoaikaan. Vaalit olivat Venäjän johdolle oppitunti siitä, miten vaaleihin voidaan – ja joidenkin mielestä tuleekin – vaikuttaa eli rahalla. Myöhemmin vaikutuskeinoihin liitettiin mielipidevaikuttaminen internetin välityksellä.
ellauri220.html on line 419: Pystymme lomailemaan Turkissa, joka sortaa kurdeja systemaattisesti ja miehittää edelleen valtaamaansa kolmannesta Kyproksesta. Ostamme aseita Israelista, joka jättää jatkuvasti noudattamatta YK:n päätöslauselmia. Meillä on dipl omaattisuhteet Saudi-Arabiaan, jonka ihmisoikeustilanne on ollut kestämätön iät ajat ja joka käy aika ajoin pommittamassa nälistettyjä jemeniläisiä. Käymme laajamittaista kauppaa Kiinan kanssa, joka kurittaa uiguurivähemmistöä kovalla kädellä. Meillä on erittäin lämpimät suhteet Yhdysvaltoihin, jonka sotilasoperaatioissa on kuollut toisen maailmansodan jälkeen miljoonia siviilejä. Mixi emme siis lomailisi myös Sotshilla?
ellauri220.html on line 449: Job's tears, scientific name Coix lacryma-jobi, also known as adlay or adlay millet, is a tall grain-bearing perennial tropical pl ant of the family Poaceae (grass family). It is native to Southeast Asia and introduced to Northern China and India in remote antiquity, and elsewhere cultivated in gardens as an annual. It has been naturalized in the southern United States and the New World tropics. In its native environment it is grown at higher elevation areas where rice and corn do not grow well. Job's tears are also commonly sold as Chinese pearl barley.
ellauri220.html on line 459: Ei helvetti suorasoittovideot on vielä pahempaa kuin vanha televisio. Makusteltiin eilen kahta epäilyttävää pizzapalaa: länsi-itävaltalainen sarja Bloody Wiener jonka sankari oli amerikaxi ääntävä muka puolibritti Max jossa KAIKKI wieniläiset sprechen Englisch Sigmund Freud-akzentilla (en jaxanut traileria loppuun asti, anglosaxipropagada alkoi eka repl iikistä), ja sveiziläinen nazijahtisarja jossa eka skene oli sveizinsaxaxi ihan vaan että päästään exoottiseen tunnelmaan, mutt jatko oli perusjenkkikamaa: luihu sakemanni saa heti kysymättä turpaan diCaprion näköiseltä nazijahtimieheltä. Siitä lähin kaikki porukat on puleerattuja Buchenwaldin teinipoikia myöden yläsaxaa puhuvia toblerone kermaperseitä. Ja sitten alkoi tulla iänikuisia tv-trooppeja tuutin täydeltä. Saatanan elefantit lampaat päänsä päällä peruukkeina. Nyt riitti sanoi Tarzan, suljen tämän viidakon.
ellauri220.html on line 461: Tycoon's in-law is a trope often found in situation comedy, it's where the boss (often a somewhat unpl easant one) pl aces a relative or in-law in a position of power. Invariably, the relative will be incompetent or worse. A variation on this trope might be to actually have the relative be the protagonist, and have to earn the respect of his or her subordinates before they can actually accompl ish anything meaningful. The trope can also be subverted if the relative is actually competent, in which case the grumbling can quickly subside. It can be averted in cases where nepotism is expected, such as a prince becoming king when his mother dies, in which case most peopl e just accept it as the way things are supposed to go. Take Charles The 3rd recently.
ellauri220.html on line 463: Of course, there is a "moron" demographic out there, and it has its members, but executives seem to believe that every person who watches TV belongs in it. This may be due to something known as the "80-20" rule in business — in this case, that market research shows that 80% of money spent on television-advertised products comes from the lowest 20% in terms of education and intelligence, so show-content is naturally geared towards them. On top of that, not only are viewers stupid, they are also intolerant of peopl e and things unlike themselves, ignorant, hate change, need to be instantly satisfied, and have the attention span of a goldfish.
ellauri220.html on line 482: Here are a few recorded real-life exampl es of Am Ind Pidgin English:
ellauri220.html on line 495: Zartog: I am Zartog, the rightful ruler of pl anet Malgor, and soon-to-be ruler of pl anet Earth, and I know a good weapon when I see one. Now tell me where your leader Ham is, or I will blast you all into oblivion! (perspective switches to the humans, who hear nothing but gibberish)
ellauri220.html on line 500: When a group of peopl e whose native language is not the language of the audience are speaking in their native language, but the audience hears them speaking the audience´s language perfectly. We are meant to assume that the characters are really speaking their own native tongue, and it is being translated purely for our benefit.
ellauri220.html on line 504: When the work uses this trope on multipl e groups of peopl e speaking different languages, things can get compl icated. The work may only translate the language of one group and keep the other group speaking its native language. In these cases, the translated group is always the one the audience is supposed to sympathize with, while the untranslated one is portrayed as more "foreign."
ellauri220.html on line 509: "And you never have Romans who are Italians! They´re always pl ayed by some English actor going ´Oh Thomas, where is my brother, Fellatio? Bring him hither.´"
ellauri220.html on line 519: This refers to casting practice, and in the case of Trope Codifier Peter Stormare it has even achieved the status of Casting Gag. It refers to "international" or "ethnic" - at any rate not American or British - actors who are considered to somehow look or be able to act so vaguely but conspicuously foreign that they can be used for any nationality. (Cliff Curtis is a maori.) It´s As Long as It Sounds Foreign and Gratuitous Foreign Language appl ied to casting. However, But Not Too Foreign is often in effect because you´ll want someone who speaks good English (even though intentionally accented) and rather panders to viewers´ expectations than give an accurate portrayal of a specific ethnic identity which also means that the character´s background might be very vague as long as it´s foreign.
ellauri220.html on line 544: Jännärigenressä on tosi selkeästi yxinkertaistettu apinan tarpeet Darwinin kolmeen leiböliin: EAT! FUCK! KILL! ilman mitään joutavia kompl ikaatioita. Moukkamaisuus on apinoiden enemmistön sanelema pohjanoteeraus kaikessa. Se on vain pahentunut Internetin takia, kun Google ym tekevät entistä parempia yhteenvetoja siitä mitä lerppahuulikansan enemmistö, nuo "tavan tallaajat" haluaa, ja sitähän ne saa. Huda hudaa. Esim Googlen navigaattorilla pääsee vaan eniten käytettyjä reittejä eniten haluttuihin kohteisiin. Jos muuta yrität, robotti ottaa käyttöön kovat otteet: "Hattunne sir!". Jo tämänkin takia globalisaatio, keskittyminen ja kasautuminen on täysin perseestä. Eise lisää valinnan vapautta vaan päinvastoin vähentää diversiteettiä. Vapaushan on sitä että saa mitä haluaa, ja enemmistö apinoista haluaa aina samaa: EAT! FUCK! KILL!
ellauri220.html on line 551: Plugg. Snygg mugg. Pigg lugg, njugg pl agg. Skygg, trygg. Lägg ägg i ligg. Stygg mygg. Hugg. Gnugg rygg.
ellauri220.html on line 573: VIDEO
ellauri220.html on line 593: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1e/Pieter_Bruegel_the_Elder_-_Children%E2%80%99s_Games_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg/800px-Pieter_Bruegel_the_Elder_-_Children%E2%80%99s_Games_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg" width="80%" />
ellauri220.html on line 604: VIDEO
ellauri220.html on line 635: Don deLillo syntyi rotan vuonna hiljaiseen sukupolveen. There were precisely 1,063 full moons after his birth to this day. Peopl e with Chinese zodiac Rat are instinctive, acute and alert in nature which makes them to be brilliant businessmen. They can always react properly before the worst circumstances take pl ace. Their strengths are adaptable, smart, cautious, acute, alert, positive, flexible, outgoing, and cheerful. But they can also be timid, unstable, stubborn, picky, lack of persistence, and querulous. Sen sisaruxista ei ole tietoa.
ellauri220.html on line 667: Puhelu poliisilaitoxelta: joku on raiskannut Esmeraldan ja heittänyt hänet alas katolta. Nike Air Jordan juoxukengät vielä jalassa. Eihän ne ole tiellä väkisinotossa. Sisar Edgar joutuu kriisiin, jossa koko luomakunta on vain roiskaus puhdasta materiaa joka muuttaa muotoaan ja luo jonnekin smaragdinvihreän pl aneetan, jonne lauma termiitinnäköisiä apinoita alkaa kasata hirmuttomasti jätettä.
ellauri220.html on line 671: The Tsar Bomba, or RDS-220 hydrogen bomb, is the largest nuclear bomb in the world today. This astounding thermonuclear bomb was created by the USSR with the goal of creating the largest nuclear weapon in the world, and it still holds the record for the most powerful expl osive ever detonated.
ellauri220.html on line 679: VIDEO
ellauri221.html on line 33: JAMES BOND 007 play:none">Elvistelyä
ellauri221.html on line 36: ploads/2018/09/288B_JAMES_BOND_ARCHIVES_XL_00399-1_Gallery.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri221.html on line 53: Jännärigenressä on tosi selkeästi yxinkertaistettu apinan tarpeet Darwinin kolmeen leiböliin: EAT! FUCK! KILL! ilman mitään joutavia kompl ikaatioita. Moukkamaisuus on apinoiden enemmistön sanelema pohjanoteeraus kaikessa. Se on vain pahentunut Internetin takia, kun Google ym tekevät entistä parempia yhteenvetoja siitä mitä lerppahuulikansan enemmistö, nuo "tavan tallaajat" haluaa, ja sitähän ne saa. Huda hudaa. Esim Googlen navigaattorilla pääsee vaan eniten käytettyjä reittejä eniten haluttuihin kohteisiin. Jos muuta yrität, robotti ottaa käyttöön kovat otteet: "Hattunne sir!". Jo tämänkin takia globalisaatio, keskittyminen ja kasautuminen on täysin perseestä. Eise lisää valinnan vapautta vaan päinvastoin vähentää diversiteettiä. Vapaushan on sitä että saa mitä haluaa, ja enemmistö apinoista haluaa aina samaa: EAT! FUCK! KILL!
ellauri221.html on line 77: At the far end, above the cold cuts table, laden with lobsters, pies, joints and delicacies in aspic, Romney’s unfinished full-length portrait of Mrs Fitzsherbet gazed provocatively across at Fragonard’s Jeu de Cartes, the broad conversation-piece which half-filled the opposite wall above the Adam firepl ace.
ellauri221.html on line 80: ploads/2014/04/not-Maria-Fitzherbert.jpg" />
ellauri221.html on line 93: Issue d'une famille modeste (son père Louis Betenfeld, violent et alcoolique, est ouvrier brasseur et sa mère Marie Lartisant domestique), Marthe Betenfeld a un frère et une sœur aînés, Camille et Jeanne. Elle est envoyée quelques années dans une institution catholique et son destin semble tout tracé : couturière, comme sa sœur aîné. Puis elle devient à Nancy apprentie culottière, à quatorze ans. Le métier ne l'enchantant guère, elle fugue de chez ses parents. Elle est interpellée pour racolage en mai 1905 par la Police des mœurs et ramenée chez ses parents. Elle fugue à nouveau à 16 ans et se retrouve à Nancy, ville avec une importante garnison militaire, où elle tombe amoureuse d'un Italien se disant sculpteur mais qui se révèle être un proxénète. Il l'envoie sur le trottoir, puis elle devient prostituée dans les « bordels à soldats » de Nancy. Devant effectuer pl us de 50 passes par jour, elle tombe rapidement malade et contracte la syphilis. Renvoyée du bordel, dénoncée par un soldat pour lui avoir transmis la syphilis et fichée par la police (où elle est inscrite comme prostituée mineure le 21 août 1905), elle est contrainte de s'enfuir à Paris. Elle rentre dans un « établissement de bains » rue Godot-de-Mauroy (maison close d'un standing supérieur à ses anciennes maisons d'abattage) où elle rencontre, un soir de septembre 1907, Henri Richer, mandataire aux Halles. Le riche industriel l'épouse le 13 avril 1915. Elle fait alors table rase de son passé et devient une respectable bourgeoise de la Belle Époque dans son hôtel particulier de l'Odéon. Elle demande à être rayée du fichier national de la prostitution, ce qui lui est refusé.
ellauri221.html on line 97: Elle dépose le 13 décembre 1945 devant le Conseil municipal de Paris un projet pour la fermeture des maisons closes. Dans son discours, elle ne s’en prend pas tant aux prostituées qu’à la société, responsable selon elle, de la « débauche organisée et patentée » et à la mafia, qui bénéficie de la prostitution réglementée ; le propos permet aussi de rappeler que le milieu de la prostitution s'est compromis avec l’occupant pendant la guerre. Sa proposition est votée et le 20 décembre 1945, le préfet de police Charles Luizet décide de fermer sans préavis les maisons du département de la Seine dans les 3 mois (au pl us tard le 15 mars 1946, date qu'a fixée le conseil municipal). Encouragée, Marthe Richard commence une campagne de presse pour le vote d'une loi généralisant ces mesures. Elle est soutenue par le Cartel d'action sociale et morale et le ministre de la Santé publique et de la Population, Robert Prigent.
ellauri221.html on line 99: Le 9 avril 1946, le député Marcel Roclore présente le rapport de la Commission de la famille, de la population et de la santé publique, et conclut à la nécessité de la fermeture. Le député Pierre Dominjon dépose une proposition de loi dans ce sens qui est votée le 13 avril 1946 à la chambre des députés. La fermeture des maisons closes est appl iquée à partir du 6 novembre 1946. Le fichier national de la prostitution est détruit et rempl acé par un fichier sanitaire et social de la prostitution (loi du 24 avril 1946). Environ 1 400 établissements sont fermés, dont 195 à Paris (177 établissements officiels) : les pl us connus comme le Chabanais, le Sphinx, La Rue des Moulins, le One-Two-Two mais aussi les sinistres maisons d’abattage comme le Fourcy et le Charbo… Beaucoup de tenanciers de maisons closes se reconvertirent en propriétaires d'hôtels de passe. La prostitution est alors une activité libre ; seules sont interdites son organisation et son expl oitation — le proxénétisme — et ses manifestations visibles.
ellauri221.html on line 119: According to the DSM-5, “Many highly successful individuals displ ay personality traits that might be considered narcissistic. Only when these traits are inflexible, maladaptive, and persisting and cause significant functional impairment or subjective distress do they constitute narcissistic personality disorder.”
ellauri221.html on line 159: At the same time, the Canadian anthropologist and critique of civilization and education Layla Abdelrahim emphasizes the anti-discipl inary and anti-totalitarian aspect of the Dunno trilogy. She must be some sort of communist or Arab terrorist.
ellauri221.html on line 267: The Adventures of Dunno in Flower Town presents a socialist anarchist utopia of Flower town. This society is self sufficient and enjoys a variety of personalities. It raises questions of the role of science and medicine, travel and knowledge, self-subsistence and hierarchy in a simpl e, humorous and concomitantly lovely style. Margaret Wetlin, an American who had immigrated to Russia during Stalinism, made an excellent translation of this book into English.
ellauri221.html on line 269: In an update of a study on empathy originally conducted in 1979, Sara Konrath, a researcher at the University of Michigan’s Institute for Social Research, Ed O’Brien and Courtney Hsing have presented “Changes in Dispositional Empathy in American College Students Over Time: A Meta-Analysis” at the annual convention of Psychological Sciences in Boston (May 28th 2010). In this study they find a drastic difference in today’s student body on campuses from college students of the late 1970s. Today’s students disagree more frequently with such statements as: “I sometimes try to understand my friends better by imagining how things look from their perspective”, or, “I often have tender, concerned feelings for peopl e less fortunate than me.”
ellauri221.html on line 271: Surrounded by anthropogenic ecological disasters, brutal wars, and the threat of destruction looming over the future of the pl anet itself due to our actions, constructed knowledge, and structured ignorance, it becomes urgent to examine the underlying ontological concepts and the reality from which our children are incarcerated in schools. This research is an attempt to look at what is the knowledge that children get exposed to and my main question is whether identity and civilisation are not the underlying culprits in our alienation from the world. As Tove Jansson shows in her moominbooks, perhaps it is necessary to empathise even with the one who dislikes us and not limit ourselves to peopl e only, but see if “I can often have tender, concerned feelings for anyone (animals and peopl e included) as fortunate or less fortunate than me”.
ellauri221.html on line 296: Goodhead is a scientist and astronaut working undercover for the CIA on Sir Hugo Drax´s Moonraker 5 space shuttle, to gather intelligence on Drax´s pl an to exterminate the human race. Bond is also working undercover in Drax´s organization, for the British Secret Intelligence Service, and he gets good head from Jolly, until she introduces him to a centrifugal force chamber, where astronauts get to grips with Gräfenberg spot sucking, and invites him to have a try. Without her knowledge, however, Drax´s henchman, Charlie Chan, tampers with the sucking machine´s controls to send it into overdrive; by the time Goodhead comes, Bond has nearly been killed. Bond later meets Goodhead in her hotel room and is able to guess her identity when he sees standard CIA underwear and dildo gadgetry there. Bond and Goodhead are at first reluctant to bonk together, fighting who is to be on top, but they are working well enough as a 2-person team by the end of the film.
ellauri221.html on line 298: Bond travels to Venice to investigate Venni Glass, a company named in some of Drax´s pl ans. Bond spots Goodhead there and follows her before re-introducing himself. Later that evening, Bond has to deal with Charlie Chan, then pays Goodhead a French visit, and they spend the night humping joyfully together.
ellauri221.html on line 302: Bond meets Goodhead again once Drax puts them under ´Moonraker 5´ to be incinerated by the lift-off. They escape and are able to pilot ´Moonraker 6´. After following Drax to his space station, Goodhead and Bond listen to Drax´s speech and leave. Jaws later captures them after the first globe is launched. Drax tells Bond about his pl an about having perfect human beings on his earth, with no physical peculiarity or ugliness, but this is overheard by Jaws. He sees that because of his ugly steel teeth, he will be destroyed alongside his ugly girlfriend, Dolly, so turns on Drax and helps Bond and Goodhead to fight Drax´s men. After Bond goes to defeat Drax, Goodhead helps him, and Dolly and Jaws get off on the self-destructing space station, escaping on a pod of their own into Earth´s atmosphere. Bond and Goodhead go after the globe, nearly destroying its inhabitants, but not quite. Bugger it.
ellauri221.html on line 306: James Bond investigates the mid-air theft of a space shuttle, and discovers a pl ot to commit global genocide.
ellauri221.html on line 309: A space shuttle called the Moonraker, built by Drax Industries, is on its way to the U.K. when it is hijacked in mid-air and the crew of the 747 carrying it is killed. Bond immediately is called into action, and starts the investigation with Hugo Drax. While at the Drax laboratories, Bond meets the brilliant and stunning Dr. Holly Goodhead, a N.A.S.A. astronaut and C.I.A. Agent who is investigating Drax for the U.S. Government. One of Drax´s thugs, the sinister Chan, attempts to kill 007 at the lab, but when that fails, he follows Bond to Venice and tries again there. Bond and Goodhead follow Drax´s trail to Brazil, where they once again run into the seven-foot Goliath Jaws, a towering giant with metal teeth. Escaping from him, they discover the existence of a huge space station undetected by U.S. or Soviet radar, and a horrible pl ot by Drax to empl oy nerve gas in a genocidal project. James and Holly must quickly find a way to stop Hugo Drax before his horrific pl ans can be put into effect.
ellauri221.html on line 310: A space shuttle is stolen enroute to London and M sends James Bond out to apologize to the shuttle creator, billionaire Hugo Drax. While visiting Drax´s estate, several attempts are made on Bond´s life, making Drax the number one suspect. Bond also meets Dr. Holly Goodhead, a N.A.S.A. scientist, who is also a C.I.A. Agent investigating Drax. Their investigations lead Bond to discover a pl ot to murder the world´s population so that Drax can repopulate the pl anet in his image. The chase takes Bond all over the world, California, Brazil, the Amazon James, and, finally, to Drax´s huge space-city over the Earth. Drax, meanwhile, has hired a old friend of Bond to take care of any problems, the steel-toothed killer Jaws.
ellauri221.html on line 311: When a U.S. space shuttle is stolen in a mid-air hijacking, only Bond can find the evil genius responsible. The clues point to billionaire Hugo Drax, who has devised a scheme to destroy all human life on Earth. As Bond races against time to stop Drax´s evil pl ot, he joins forces with Dr. Holly Goodhead, a N.A.S.A. scientist who is as beautiful as she is brilliant, and 007 needs all the help he can get, for Drax´s henchman is none other Bond´s old nemesis Jaws, the indestructible steel-toothed giant. Their adventure leads all the way to a gigantic space station, where the stage is set for an epic battle for the fate of all mankind.
ellauri221.html on line 314: VIDEO
ellauri221.html on line 383: The pl anet Egg is closed and there´s nothing left to do
ellauri221.html on line 398: The pl anet Egg is closed and there´s nothing left to do
ellauri221.html on line 407: ploads/2020/06/News_KH-GK-Chesterton-07.jpg" height="150px" />
ellauri221.html on line 408: ploads/2022/08/antti-nylen-emilia-kukkala-2-1024x683.jpg.webp" height="150px" />
ellauri222.html on line 34: Les Aventures de Saul Bellow play:none">Finnin puristelua
ellauri222.html on line 39: ...a man who was a towering intellectual (but short), a charismatic personality (but nasty) and Nobel Prize winner (anti communist) who searched in his writing for an answer (haha what did he find? EFK?) to the spiritual wilderness at the core of the human experience – but also (and above all) a petty man repl ete with human faults. Tää on tietysti Sale, jonka rusikointi jatkuu tässä Salen dickensiläistä pikareskiromaania lukiessa. Tämä albumi on jatkoa albumille 52 , jossa Salea on jo alustavasti rökitetty.
ellauri222.html on line 68: In Leader's Bellow biography Vol 2, “Love and Strife,” the novel “Herzog” is published on the very first page and reaches No. 1 on the best-seller list, suppl anting John le Carré’s ‘The Spy Who Came In From the Cold.’ Never again would Bellow, about to turn 50 years old, lack for wealth, power, awards or flunkies to stand by him, ready to take his coat and do his bidding. The temptation for someone in his position was to become an insufferable, spoiled monster. And Bellow quickly gave in to temptation.
ellauri222.html on line 76: The irony in Bellow’s soul was that he craved love and experience, and learned to view peopl e coldly and clinically. The writer Amos Oz recalled most vividly from his friendship with Bellow an exchange that they shared privately about death. “I said I was hoping to die in my sleep, but Saul responded by saying that, on the contrary, he would like to die wide awake and fully conscious, because his death is such a crucial experience he wouldn’t want to miss it.”
ellauri222.html on line 96: Wolpe, the leader of Sinai Templ e of Los Angeles, recently sat down with Dr. Greg Bellow, 69, the oldest of Saul Bellow’s four children, to discuss the topic of Greg’s new book, Saul Bellow’s Heart: A Son’s Memoir, before an audience of some 200 mature koprophiles at Templ e Emanuel of Beverly Hills, Calif.
ellauri222.html on line 100: As it turned out, “Young Saul” was wrong about World War II. As Greg put it to the audience at Templ e Emanuel, “He blew it.” Moreover, speaking of the post-war “Old Saul,” Greg said his father “turned from a man of questions to a man of answers.” As he began to recognize the social evils that surrounded him in the post-war world, he felt that “mankind cannot govern itself any better than Hitler or Stalin” and grew ever more critical and pessimistic.
ellauri222.html on line 102: “He became irascible and angry, anti-black and anti-women’s lib,” Greg Bellow told the audience. Saul Bellow’s attitude towards Judaism was changed compl etely by the Six Day War in June 1967. It transformed him from a socialist to a conservative. He had a need to get involved and, much to the surprise of his family, he left for Israel to cover the war as a correspondent for Newsday. “I had to go,” Saul expl ained at the time.
ellauri222.html on line 106: Not long thereafter, Saul went through what Greg called “a spiritual crisis.” It was then that he began to write Mr. Sammler’s Planet, which literary critic Adam Kirsch described as “a document of the cravings of 1960s America, and an attempt to bring the Holocaust to bear on America.” Greg told JNS.org that Mr. Sammler’s Planet is a “watershed novel” because it conveys not only a message about the Holocaust in general, but also “an indictment against the self-imposed blindness that prevented peopl e from seeing the Nazi threat.
ellauri222.html on line 110: Asked whether they believe there is a possibility that our world might once experience the kind of upheaval it did during World War II and the Holocaust, much as the world of Mr. Sammle r collapsed in Saul Bellow’s novel, both Wolpe and Greg Bellow told JNS.org that Mr. Sammler’s Planet is recommended reading not just for Jews, but for everyone. They strongly believe that the history and lessons of the Holocaust must continue to be taught, with Rabbi Wolpe saying "Gaza shows the ease with which a civilization, such as Israel, can slip into barbarism.”
Wolpe wondered how many young peopl e today even know Saul Bellow or read his work, but mused how wonderful it would be if more children of famous authors wrote about their parents, as Greg Bellow has.
ellauri222.html on line 125: In his Op-Ed about the Zulu Tolstoy, Bellow made much of his academic training in anthropology. After leaving Northwestern, he did become a graduate student in anthropology at the University of Wisconsin. But he compl eted just one course before dropping out and returning to Chicago, where he married a woman, Anita Goshkin, who was studying for a master’s degree in social work, and began his career as a fiction writer and itinerant college teacher. His first job was at Pestalozzi-Froebel Teachers College, on South Michigan Avenue, in downtown Chicago.
ellauri222.html on line 137: In the culture of little magazines, friendship is the last thing to prevent one writer from reviewing the work of another. As a novelist happy to have well-disposed reviewers, Bellow had an obvious stake in these friendships. But the friends had a stake in Bellow, too. As Mark Greif points out in his important new study of mid-century intellectual life, “The Age of the Crisis of Man,” Bellow came on the scene at a time when many peopl e imagined the fate of modern man to be somehow tied to the fate of the novel. Was the novel dead or was it not? Much was thought to depend on the answer. And for peopl e who worried about this Bellow was the great hope. Atlas quotes Norman Podhoretz: “There was a sense in which the validity of a whole phase of American experience was felt to hang on the question of whether or not he would turn out to be a great novelist.”
ellauri222.html on line 139: So even “Dangling Man,” an awkwardly written book about which Bellow later said, “I can’t read a page of it without feeling embarrassed,” was received as a sign that the novel might after all be up to its historic task. “Here, for the first time I think, the experience of a new generation has been seized,” Delmore Schwartz wrote, in Partisan Review. In The New Yorker, Edmund Wilson called “Dangling Man” a “testimony on the psychology of a whole generation.” When Bellow’s second novel, “The Victim,” came out, in 1947, Martin Greenberg, in Commentary, expl ained that Bellow had succeeded in making Jewishness “a quality that informs all of modern life . . . the quality of modernity itself.” In Partisan Review, Elizabeth Hardwick suggested that Bellow might become “the redeeming novelist of the period.”
ellauri222.html on line 141: This notion that Bellow’s achievement as a novelist was redemptive of the form was a consistent theme in the reviews up through “Herzog.” So was the notion that his protagonists were representatives of the modern condition. After “Herzog,” those reactions largely disappeared. Peopl e stopped fretting about the death of the novel, and Bellow’s protagonists started being treated as what they always were, oddballs and cranks. But the critical reception of Bellow’s books in the first half of his career funded his reputation. It cashed out, ultimately, in the Nobel Prize. Nobels are awarded to writers who are judged to have universalized the marginal.
ellauri222.html on line 149: The subject of “Augie March” is the same as the subject of “Dangling Man” and “The Victim”: the danger of becoming trapped in other peopl e’s definition of you. In the case of “Augie March,” the person in danger of being trapped was Saul Bellow. “This was not what being a novelist was supposed to have meant”: he is referring to the expectations of his intellectual backers. He realized that he didn’t want to be the great hope of the novel or to give voice to a generation’s angst. He wanted to write up the life he knew in the way James Joyce had written up the life he knew, and to transform it into a fantastic verbal artifact, a book that broke all the rules.
ellauri222.html on line 165: In Commentary, Podhoretz compl ained that the novel lacked development and that its exuberance was forced. He called it a failure. Podhoretz was one of Trilling’s protégés, and Bellow always believed that Trilling was behind the review, although Podhoretz denied it. But Atlas says that the art critic Clement Greenberg, then an editor at Commentary, having recently come over from Partisan Review, claimed that the editors had put Podhoretz up to it. It was felt in New York circles, Greenberg said, that Bellow had gone a little too far.
ellauri222.html on line 169: At Bard, Bellow became close friends with a literature professor named Jack Ludwig. As Leader describes him, Ludwig was an oversized personality, a big man, extravagant, a shameless purveyor of bad Yiddish, and an operator. Ludwig idolized Bellow; peopl e who knew them said that Ludwig wanted to be Bellow. He flattered Bellow, went for long walks with him, started up a literary journal with him, and generally insinuated himself into Bellow’s life. Bellow accepted the proffer of adulatory attentiveness. The coupl es (Ludwig was married) socialized together. This was the period when Bellow wrote “Seize the Day,” which Partisan Review published in a single issue, in 1956, after The New Yorker turned it down, and “Henderson the Rain King,” published in 1959, a novel whose hero was based on a neighbor of the Bellows in upstate New York.
ellauri222.html on line 175: Devastated, Bellow went to Europe on a cultural-dipl omacy junket for the State Department. While abroad, he engaged assiduously in what Leader calls “womanizing.” He returned to Bard, in the summer of 1960, and took up with a visiting French professor named Rosette Lamont. The divorce from Sasha went through in June. For a while, Bellow and Sasha had the same lawyer, who was pl eased to be representing both parties in the hottest divorce in town, but eventually Bellow was persuaded to retain his own attorney.
ellauri222.html on line 183: “Herzog” is a revenge novel. The ex-wife, Madeleine, is a stone-cold man-killer. Her lover, Valentine Gersbach, is described as a “loud, flamboyant, ass-clutching brute.” Ludwig had a Ph.D. and a damaged foot; Bellow makes Gersbach a radio announcer with a wooden leg. The Herzog character is passive, loving, an innocent soul who cannot make sense of a world in which peopl e like his estranged wife and her lover can exist. He is an ex-university professor, the author of a distinguished tome called “Romanticism and Christianity.” The Rosette Lamont character, called Ramona, is a sexpot with a heart of gold; she specializes in intimate candlelight dinners and lacy lingerie. She is a professor of love, not French.
ellauri222.html on line 185: “Herzog” was nevertheless received the way all Bellow’s novels had been received: as a report on the modern condition. Many of the critics who reviewed it—Irving Howe, Philip Rahv, Stanley Edgar Hyman, Richard Ellmann, Richard Poirier—knew Bellow personally and knew all about the divorce. (Poirier was an old friend of Ludwig’s; the review he published, in Partisan Review, was a hatchet job.) None of these reviewers mentioned the autobiographical basis of the book, and several of them warned against reading it autobiographically, without ever expl aining why anyone might want to. The world had no way of knowing that the story was not compl etely made up.
ellauri222.html on line 187: Howe wrote that “Herzog” was a novel “driven by an idea”—the idea that modern man can overcome alienation and despair. Howe could see the appeal of this idea, but he was worried that it might not have been “worked out with sufficient care.” The reviewer in the Times Book Review thought that the novel offered “a credo for the times.” “The age is full of fearful abysses,” the reviewer expl ained. “If peopl e are to go ahead, they must move into and through these abysses,” and so on.
ellauri222.html on line 189: Bellow must have been tickled to death. The inventive feature of “Herzog” is a series of letters that the protagonist, in his misery, composes not only to Madeleine and Gersbach but to famous peopl e (like President Eisenhower) and philosophers (like Heidegger and Nietzsche). These long letters, unfinished and unmailed, are sendups of an intellectual’s effort to understand human behavior by means of the conceptual apparatus of Mortimer Adler’s Great Books. Herzog is a comic figure, a holy fool, a schlimazel with a Ph.D. The whole point of his story is that when you are compl etely screwed the best you can hope for is a little sex and sympathy. The Western canon isn’t going to be much help.
ellauri222.html on line 191: The determination to consider the novel strictly as fiction extended even to its characters. Rosette Lamont reviewed the novel. She, too, treated the book as pure make-believe. She breezed right by the Ramona character (“Her religion is sex, a welcome relief from Madeleine’s phony conversion . . . but Herzog is too divided in his mind, too busy with resentment to free himself from a heavy conscience. Besides he is suspicious of pl easure, having learned Julien Sorel’s lesson,” and so on). She concluded with the thought that at the end of the novel Herzog enters into “a theandric relationship with the world around him.”
ellauri222.html on line 193: And it got even better. Jack Ludwig reviewed the novel. He informed readers of Holiday that “the book is a major breakthrough.” By no means should it be read as autobiography—“as if an artist with Bellow’s enormous gifts were simpl y pl aying at second-guessing reality, settling scores.” No, in this book, Ludwig wrote, “Bellow is after something greater.” The greater something turns out to be “man’s contradiction, his absurdity, his alienation,” and so on. It was pretty chutzpadik, as even Bellow had to admit. But by then he was laughing all the way to the bank.
ellauri222.html on line 195: You can see the biographical problem. From the beginning, Bellow drew on peopl e he knew, including his wives and girlfriends and the members of his own family, for his characters. In “Augie March,” almost every character—and there are dozens—was directly based on some real-life counterpart. Most of “Herzog” is a roman à clef. Leader therefore decided to treat the novels as authoritative sources of information about the peopl e in Bellow’s life. When Leader tells us about Jack Ludwig and Sondra Tschacbasov, he quotes the descriptions of Gersbach and Madeleine in “Herzog.” In the case of the many relatives with counterparts in “Augie March,” this can get confusing. You’re not always sure whether you’re reading about a person or a fictional version of that person.
ellauri222.html on line 197: One reason for reading biographies of writers like Bellow, who draw from peopl e in their own lives, is to learn what those peopl e were really like, or at least what they were like to someone who is not Bellow. You often can’t do that with Leader’s biography. Leader also wants to assess Bellow’s accompl ishment as a novelist. He has to keep three balls in the air at once: the biographical story, an interpretation of the fiction as autobiography, and a consideration of the fiction as fiction. That’s why his book is so long.
ellauri222.html on line 201: Leader thinks that Bellow pl unged into his books and wrote on sheer enthusiasm, then surfaced after a hundred pages or so and wondered how to get back to shore. There is very little moral logic to his stories. Things just happen. (A major exception is “Seize the Day,” which is formally perfectly realized. But that book is a novella, a day in the life. It doesn’t require a pl ot.)
ellauri222.html on line 211: But “Ravelstein” is a revenge novel, too. It’s not really about Ravelstein/Bloom. It’s about the narrator, a writer named Chick, who has been treated cruelly by his wife, Vela, a beautiful and brilliant physicist—a wicked caricature of Bellow’s fourth wife, the mathematician Alexandra Ionescu Tulcea. There are also a coupl e of drive-by take-downs along the way—of Mircea Eliade, a historian of religion at Chicago rumored to have been involved in the fascist Romanian Iron Guard, and of the owner of a restaurant on St. Martin, in the Caribbean, where Bellow contracted a case of food poisoning that nearly killed him. He brings them into the story just to skewer them.
ellauri222.html on line 249: Saul had women stashed all over town. His self‑justification: his career as an artist entitled him to let peopl e down with impunity. He was married five times in all and infidelity was an issue throughout. Towards the end of his life, Saul asked his son rather charmingly, "Was I a man or a jerk?". It was the right question, and an easy one to answer: A jerk.
ellauri222.html on line 251: There were a lot of very unhappy peopl e at various points of his life, who felt maligned. Ex-wives high up there. Wives number two and three, Adam's mother and Daniel's took a whipping.
ellauri222.html on line 257: For a man for such small balls, he had huge needs. The writing life needed to be supported. He failed his children; he left them, and it was a wound he carried around like a medal. He knew the cruelty of this. At the very end, though he was not Rosie's father (oops), he was in the house. He and Rosie would watch The Lion King together: in the final, unpl easant stages of his last illness, he was at the point where he didn't mind watching that same film over and over. I was somehow managing Rosie and Saul in the same way." Do they have a relationship with Saul's sons? Not really. Rosie has special needs, and Jänis is focused very much on her. Their house is cozy, not grand, there just happen to be photographs of a Nobel laureate on almost every shelf. Guess which one?
ellauri222.html on line 259: Jänisrouva sanoi jälkikäteen: He did not want to hurt the peopl e he loved. (Lucky they were so few of them. At 17, he said he hated himself more than melodrama or even spinach.) There wasn't a single part of my being that wasn't able to open up to him (Yeah, I bet). Jänis Bellow was born in Canada. Bellow was one of her professors. She came from a small pl ace, but not too small for Saul to enter. He wasn't exactly tall, but he had this broad upper body, these giant arms, like a sloth."
ellauri222.html on line 273: Well, it was a deep and perverse stupidity. It didn't require a great mind to see what Stalinism was. But the militants and activists refused to reckon with the simpl e facts available to everybody.
ellauri222.html on line 277: One of your persistent themes is the purgation one can obtain only through rage. The forces of aggression are liberating, etc. And I can see that as a legitimate point of view. OK if your characters are titans. But Eve is simpl y a pitiful woman and Sylphid is a pampered, wicked fat girl with a bison hump. These are not titans.
ellauri222.html on line 279: There aren't many peopl e to whom I can be so open. We've always been candid with each other and I hope we will continue, both of us, to say what we think. You'll be sore at me, but I believe you won't cast me off for ever. Love, Shlomo.
ellauri222.html on line 295: Mistähän Sale sai päähänsä tän kotkankesytyxen Mexikossa? Se on yhtä uskottavan oloinen kuin se sen Aahrikka-pl äjäys. Kaikesta näkee ettei kaveri ole käynyt Chicagosta kauempana kuin ehkä Pariisissa (jota se muuten inhosi). Kukaan jenkkiarvostelija ei sano siitä mitään. Ilmeisesti se ei kiinnostanut niitäkään, kun siinä on vaan märkäselkiä.
ellauri222.html on line 331: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b3/Ethelred_the_Unready.jpg/220px-Ethelred_the_Unready.jpg" />
ellauri222.html on line 361: Grandma Lausch tells Augie, “The more you love peopl e the more they’ll mix you up. A child loves, a person respects. Respect is better than love.” Which is really better, respect or love? The two brothers, Augie and Simon, are on opposite sides of this argument. Augie identifies himself on the side of love. An idealist with a soft heart, he is almost comically susceptible to falling in love, and openly shows his sympathy, even toward the small lizards that are killed by the eagle Caligula. Augie’s vision for an orphan home and academy is driven by his motivation to share love. Simon, on the other hand, prefers respect. He marries Charlotte and stays with her because he admires her business sense, not because he feels romantic love for her. He doesn’t care whether the men at the club love him. In fact, he knows they hate him. But this doesn’t matter to him as long as he is respected. Ultimately, Simon is richer and more successful, but Augie seems happier. What's love got to do with it. What a reptile.
ellauri222.html on line 365: One of the major themes of the novel is the human tendency toward dishonesty. Augie is not a particularly honest character. He cheats, he steals, and lies quite frequently. Dishonesty characterizes many of the other characters in the novel, including Grandma, Einhorn, Mimi (who lies to doctors that she thinks her pregnancy abnormal), Stella, Agnes, and Mintouchian. The only characters who do not lie or cheat are the simpl e-minded Mama and Georgie. Lying appears necessary for peopl e to survive in a Machiavellian world. As Mintouchian puts it: “I’m a great admirer of our species. I stand in awe of the genius of the race. But a large part of this genius is devoted to lying and seeming what you are not.” The ethics of the American Jew. The book starts with a lie: I am an American, Chicago born."
ellauri222.html on line 379: Basteshaw is a biophysicist who works as ship’s carpenter on the McManus, the ship Augie is assigned to while in the Merchant Marines during World War II. After their ship is sunk by torpedoes, Augie and Basteshaw are the only survivors and end up on the same lifeboat. Augie gradually realizes that Basteshaw is an insane genius. Convinced that he has the power to create life from protopl asm, he tries to convince Augie to go with him to the Canary Islands and be his research assistant. In reality, their lifeboat is nowhere near the Canary Islands. Basteshaw ties Augie up to stop him from signaling a ship that might rescue them. Finally Augie gets free, ties up Basteshaw, and manages to signal a British tanker to rescue them.
ellauri222.html on line 383: Bavatsky is a drunken handyman empl oyed by the Einhorns.
ellauri222.html on line 403: Sailor Bulba is an accompl ice in the robbery committed by Joe Gorman and Augie. Brute-nosed and bearish, he is a menacing, dangerous figure.
ellauri222.html on line 435: Einhorn is a highly intelligent and wealthy real-estate broker whom Augie goes to work for while still a junior in high school. As Einhorn is crippl ed and wheelchair-bound, Augie carries him to and from the car and assists him in other daily activities. Einhorn loses almost everything in the great stock market crash, but works hard to build his business up again.
ellauri222.html on line 439: The Commissioner is Einhorn’s elderly father. An important and respected man, he is a real-estate broker who owns and controls many properties in the city. Married multipl e times, he is an affable womanizer.
ellauri222.html on line 455: An empl oyee of the Einhorns, the pretty and promiscuous Lollie is also William Einhorn’s mistress for a time. She leaves the family’s empl oy after the stock market crash and ends up being killed by a boyfriend.
ellauri222.html on line 519: Mr. and Mrs. Kreindl are Hungarian immigrants and neighbors of the Marches. Mr. Kreindl, a “powerful, stub-handed man with a large belly,” pl ays cards with Grandma Lausch and helps out the family. His wife, Mrs. Kreindl, is quiet and modest to the neighbors and violently quarrelsome at home.
ellauri222.html on line 539: Large, heavy Dutch peopl e, the Magnuses are a solid family. They admire Simon very much and take him into their fold.
ellauri222.html on line 555: Augie, the hero of the novel, is a Jewish-American boy coming of age in Depression-era Chicago. Since their father abandoned the family, Augie and his two brothers are raised by their slow-witted mother and surrogate “Grandma” Lausch. Augie, good-looking with “tall hair” and green-gray eyes, is a soft-hearted young man whose sympathy for others often gets him into trouble. He holds a variety of jobs throughout his life and learns from different peopl e he encounters. Peopl e tend to “adopt” Augie and try to groom him into the person they want him to be, but he really wants to become his own person. The name Augie is short for “August,” which means “Great.” Augie has a desire for greatness, but he has no idea of how to do it, thinking it beyond his ability to “breathe the pointy, star-furnished air at its highest difficulty.” He goes along through life repeating the same mistakes. In the end, Augie realizes that his life has been a voyage of discovery. Whether or not he has been a success, he doesn’t know, but he will continue with unquenchable optimism and hope, “forever rising up.”
ellauri222.html on line 563: Augie’s mother is “simpl e-minded,” gentle, and meek, with few teeth left. She allows herself to be ruled by Grandma Lausch and later, by her son Simon. After Mama goes blind, Simon sells her home to get money, and she ends up in a home. The one-time Mama stands up for herself is when she insists on bringing her white cane to Simon’s wedding, against the wishes of Simon, who appears ashamed of her disability. Later in her life, she lives in a luxurious bourgeois style, taken care of by Simon.
ellauri222.html on line 567: Simon is Augie’s older brother. Tall, good-looking, and blond, Simon has a self-assurance and sense of direction that Augie does not. He thinks Augie is too soft-hearted. After being jilted by his girlfriend Cissy Flexner, Simon marries the coal heiress Charlotte Magnus and becomes rich through multipl e business ventures. Simon is very successful, but not content. Although he respects Charlotte for her business sense, his marriage lacks romantic love. His mistress, Renée, uses him for his money. Augie pities him because he cannot have children.
ellauri222.html on line 619: Five Properties is Anna Coblin’s brother. An immense, long-armed man with a gleeful, insincere smile, he drives a dairy truck and loves to boast that he has “Five prope’ties, pl ente money.” The money was earned by service during the war in Poland. His goal is to marry an American woman.
ellauri222.html on line 651: Mildred Stark is a crippl ed girl who goes to work for Einhorn after the stock-market crash and becomes his mistress. She is aged about thirty and heavy, but Einhorn is flattered that she is in love with him. Mildred dislikes Augie.
ellauri222.html on line 703: Wily and his 2 hens were great fans of bondage. "The only hope for peace is to teach peopl e who are full of pep and unbound force to enjoy being bound... Only when the control of self by others is more pl easant than the unbound assertion of self in human relationships can we hope for a stable, peaceful human society... Giving arse to others, being controlled by them, submitting to other peopl e cannot possibly be enjoyable without a strong erotic element."
ellauri222.html on line 705: In a 1943 issue of The American Scholar, Marston wrote: "Not even girls want to be girls so long as our feminine archetype lacks force, strength, and power. Not wanting to be girls, they don't want to be tender, submissive, peace-loving as good women are. Women's strong qualities have become despised because of their weakness. The obvious remedy is to create a feminine character with all the strength of Superman pl us all the allure of a good and beautiful woman."
ellauri222.html on line 707: Marston's character was a native of an all-female utopia of Amazons who became a crime-fighting U.S. government agent, using her superhuman strength and agility, and her ability to force villains to submit and tell the truth by binding them with her magic "lasso". Wonder Woman's golden "lasso" and Venus Girdle in particular were the focus of many of the early stories and have the same capability to reform peopl e for good in the short term that Transformation Island and prolonged wearing of Venus Girdles offered in the longer term. The Venus Girdle was an allegory for Marston's theory of "sex love" training, where peopl e can be "trained" to embrace submission through eroticism.
ellauri222.html on line 728: Bernard Le Bouyer de Fontenelle , né le 11 février 1657 à Rouen et mort le 9 janvier 1757 à Paris, est un écrivain, dramaturge et scientifique français. Fontenelle oli armoton keskikertaisuus joka yritettyään kaikenlaista päätyi populääritieteen kautta Ranskan akatemiaan. Eli kuukautta vaille satavuotiaaxi, laiskiainen. Il ne connut pas l’amitié vraie, et put s’appl iquer ces mots d’une de ses églogues : « Il me manqua d’aimer. » Claudine de Tencin, lui disait en montrant sa poitrine : « Ce n’est pas un cœur que vous avez là ; c’est de la cervelle, comme dans la tête."
ellauri222.html on line 739: Before discussing some of the minor characters in this story, it should be borne in mind that each of them can be analyzed in connection with Candide who may accept or reject their beliefs or principl es. Among such suppl ementary characters, we can single out Lord Pococurante. To a certain degree, even his name is symbolic; the word “pococurante” is of Italian origin and it can be translated into English as indifferent. He perfectly corresponds to his name. At the very beginning of the fifteenth chapter, Voltaire makes the reader feel that Lord Pococurante is tired of everything. He says, “I make them lie with me sometimes, for I am very tired of the ladies of the town, of their coquetries, of their jealousies, of their quarrels, of their humors, of their pettinesses, of their pride, of their follies” (Voltaire, 70)
ellauri222.html on line 743: His literary tastes are also very interesting. Lord Pococurante is quite able to criticize Homer, Horace, and Cicero; there is nothing, which may seem flawless. His ability to find defects in everything prevents him from taking pl easure in literature, philosophy, and painting. It is obvious that the author is ironic about him, it can be deduced from Candides remark “But is there not a pl easure in criticizing everything, in pointing out faults where others see nothing but beauties’ (Voltaire, 73). The main problem is that such a world outlook is a personal tragedy, and such an attitude may eventually result in suicide.
ellauri222.html on line 745: The question arises why Voltaire inserts such a character in the novella, and what functions he performs in the story. On the one hand, Lord Pococurante embodies the then French aristocracy, the social class, surfeited with everything. The author attracts the reader’s attention to a very curious paradox: peopl e, who live in luxury, cannot enjoy it. Though it is not expl icitly stated by Voltaire, such peopl e are doomed to failure. At this point, we can say with certainty that Voltaire is prophetic in this novella.
ellauri222.html on line 749: Apart from that, this character demands perfection only from other peopl e, he never attempts to appl y this principl e to himself and it makes him a slightly comic figure. Lord Pococurante is neither artist, nor writer, but he takes faults with the world masterpieces, which is absurd in its core. Nevertheless, many peopl e deem themselves quite competent for criticizing, having never created any work of art.
ellauri222.html on line 759: Bellow's first two novels, Dangling Man and The Victim, are brief and discipl ined works, darker in mood and less intellectually compl ex than the later fiction but featuring protagonists who anticipate later Bellovian heroes both in their introspection and in their resistance to urban apathy. In Paris, Saul realized he need not copycat Flaubert and that instead he could write as he spoke. The result was Augie.
ellauri222.html on line 761: The first novel to displ ay Bellow's characteristic expansiveness and optimism, The Adventures of Augie March presents a dazzling panorama of comically eccentric characters in a picaresque tale narrated by the irrepressible title character, who defends human possibility by embracing the hope that "There may gods turn up anywhere." Subsequent novels vary in tone from the intensity of Seize the Day to the exuberance of Henderson the Rain King to the ironic ambiguity of Herzog, but all expl ore the nature of human male freedom and the tensions between the individual's need for self and the needs of society. Augie March, Tommy Wilhelm, Eugene Henderson, and Moses Herzog all yearn to pl ease themselves by finding the beauty in life. By creating these highly individualistic characters and the milieu in which they move, Bellow reveals the flashes of the extraordinary in the ordinary that make such fun possible and rejects the attitude that everyday life must be trivial and ignoble. It is like that just for the losers.
ellauri222.html on line 767: In their quest to find the beaver that gives meaning to life, Bellow's protagonists must also come to terms with death. The message Bellow conveys in almost all of his novels is that one must fear death to know the meaning of life and what it means to be human. Henderson overcomes his fear of death when he is buried and symbolically resurrected in the African king Dahfu's experiment. Similarly, in Seize the Day, Tommy Wilhelm confronts death in a symbolic drowning. Charlie Citrine in Humboldt's Gift echoes Whitman in viewing death as the essential question, pointing out that it is only through death that Sauls can compl ete the cycle of life by liberating self from the body. Bellow's meditations on death darken in Mr. Sammler's Planet and The Dean's December. While the title character in Mr. Sammler's Planet eagerly awaits the death of the person he most values in the world, Bellow contempl ates the approaching death of Western culture at the hands of those who have abandoned humanistic values. The Dean's December presents an apocalyptic vision of urban decay in a Chicago totally lacking the comic touches that soften Charlie Citrone's portrait of this same city as a "moronic inferno" in Humboldt's Gift. An uncharacteristically bleak yarn from he old standup comic. With More Die of Heartbreak and the recent novellas, however, Bellow returns to his more characteristic blend of pathos and farce in contempl ating the relationship between life and death. In the recent Ravelstein, Bellow once again charts this essential confrontation when Saul recounts not only his best friend's death from AIDS but also his own near-death experience from food poisoning. Through this foreground, in a fictionalized memoir to his own gay friend Allan Bloom, Bellow reveals the resilient love and tenderness that offer the modern world its saving grace.
ellauri222.html on line 773: Some common synonyms of gay are animated, lively, sprightly, and vivacious. While all these words mean "keenly alive and spirited," gay stresses compl ete freedom from care and overflowing spirits. the gay spirit of Paris in the 1920s. Bellow and his gay chummies in Chicago.
ellauri222.html on line 777: The words animated and gay can be used in similar contexts, but animated appl ies to what is spirited and active. An animated discussion of current LBQT events.
ellauri222.html on line 789: The synonyms vivacious and gay are sometimes interchangeable, but vivacious suggests an activeness of gesture and wit, often pl ayful or alluring. A vivacious buckx party host.
ellauri222.html on line 791: Because Bellow refuses to devalue human potential in even his bleakest scenarios, his novels often come under attack for their affirmative endings. Augie hails himself as a new Columbus, the rediscoverer of America; Henderson, while triumphantly returning home with his new charges, dances with glee, "leaping, leaping, pounding, and tingling over the pure white lining of the grey Arctic silence." Herzog inexpl icably evades his fate, emerging from the flux of his tortured mind to reclaim his sanity and his confidence in the future. Yet, the victories of Bellow's heroes are not unqualified, but rather as ambiguous and tenuous as is the human condition itself. As a new Columbus, Augie speaks from exile in Europe; in holding the orphan child, Henderson recalls the pain of his separation from his own father; by renouncing his self-pity and his murderous rage at his ex-wife Madeleine, Herzog reduces but does not expiate his guilt. Nonetheless, these characters earn whatever spiritual victory they reap through their penes and their refusal to succumb to doubt and cynicism. Through their perseverance in seeking the truth of human existence, they ultimately renew themselves by transcending to an intuitive spiritual awareness that is no less real because it must be taken on faith.
ellauri222.html on line 793: In all of Bellow's works, an appreciation of the cultural context in which his protagonists struggle is essential to understanding these characters and their search for renewal. Bellow's vision centers almost exclusively on Jewish male experience in contemporary urban America. Proud of their heritage, his heroes are usually second-generation Jewish immigrants who seek to discover how they can live meaningfully in their American present while honoring their skinless knobs. Much of their ability to maintain their belief in humanity despite their knowledge of the world can be attributed to the affirmative nature of the Jewish culture. Bellovian heroes live in a WASP society in which they are only partially assimilated. However, as Jews have done historically, they maintain their concern for morality and community despite their cultural displ acement.
ellauri222.html on line 795: Though in some ways separated from American society, Bellow's protagonists also strongly connect their identity with America. Augie begins his adventures by claiming, "I am an American, Chicago born—Chicago, that somber city." Almost all of Bellow's novels take pl ace in an American city, most often Chicago or New York. Through his depiction of urban reality, Bellow anchors his novels in the actual world, and he uses the city as his central metaphor for contemporary materialism. Although recognizing the importance of history and memory, Bellow's novels maintain a constant engagement with the present moment. His characters move in the real world, confronting sensuous images of urban chaos and clutter that often threaten to overwhelm them. Looking down on the Hudson River, Tommy Wilhelm sees "tugs with matted beards of cordage" and "the red bones of new apartments rising on the bluffs." Sammler denounces contemporary New Yorkers for the "free ways of barbarism" that they practice beneath the guise of "civilized order, property rights [and] refined technological organization." In Humboldt's Gift, which is repl ete with images of cannibalism and vampirism, Charlie Citrone sees Von Trenck, the source of his material success, as "the blood-scent that attracted the sharks of Chicago." Acknowledging the influence of the city on his fiction, Bellow himself has remarked, "I don't know how I could possibly separate my knowledge of life such as it is, from the city. I could no more tell you how deepl y it's gotten into my bones than the lady who paints radium dials in the clock factory can tell you." However, although the city serves to identify the deterministic social pressures that threaten to destroy civilization, Bellow's heroes refuse to become its victims and instead draw on their latent nondeterministic resources of vitality to reassert their uniquely American belief in individual freedom, as well as their faith in the possibility of community.
ellauri222.html on line 797: Except for Clara Velde in A Theft, the protagonists in Bellow's novels and novellas are all male. The Bellovian hero typically seeks erotic pl easure, emotional security, and egoistic confirmation from the women in his life. In marriage, his relationships with women are conflicted, and he often retreats from his role as husband to a sensuous but selfish and demanding wife who paradoxically represents both his yearning for freewheeling sex happiness and society's pressure to relinquish the freedom so essential to his self-realization. Like his male characters who all are Saul lookalikes, Bellow's females are often interchangeable and serve roles of little dramatic import. However, although the author has come under increasing criticism for his superficial treatment of women, his depiction of women and male-female relationships serves to reinforce the psychological crisis that each male protagonist must negotiate to empty their scrotums so as to achieve peace and fulfillment.
ellauri222.html on line 807:
Ihmiset kysyvät myös: What is a simpl e definition of transcendentalism?
ellauri222.html on line 809: Transcendentalism is a very formal word that describes a very simpl e idea. Peopl e, men and women equally, have knowledge about themselves and the world around them that "transcends" or goes beyond what they can see, hear, taste, touch or feel.
ellauri222.html on line 819: An intensely intellectual writer who peppers his novels with allusions, Bellow draws on many cultural traditions in his analysis of both the sources of American experience and its present manifestations. His fiction fully documents the decline of Western civilization without conceding its obvious demise, and the ambiguity and tenuousness of even his most positive endings balance sadness and comic skepticism with the steadfast faith that he the artist can effect coherence and order, or failing that a lot of cash, out of the chaos of modern experience. His tip for success: kusettakaa minkä jaxatte! For his achievement in confronting the modern existential dilemma with compassion and humor, Bellow's pl ace in twentieth-century American literary history seems assured by drooling groupies like myself.
ellauri222.html on line 837: British critics tend to regard the American predilection for Big Novels as a vulgar neurosis — like the American predilection for big cars or big hamburgers. Oh God, we think: here comes another sweating, free-dreaming maniac with another thousand-pager; here comes another Big Mac. First, Dos Passos produced the Great American Novel; now they all want one. Yet in a sense every ambitious American novelist is genuinely trying to write a novel called USA. Perhaps this isn’t just a foible; perhaps it is an inescapable response to America – twentieth-century America, racially mixed and mobile, twenty-four hour, endless, extreme, superabundantly various. American novels are big all right, but partly because America is big too. You need pl enty of nerve, ink and energy to do justice to the pl ace, and no one has made greater efforts than Saul Bellow. In 1976 Bellow was awarded the Nobel Prize for Literature, praised by the Swedes ‘for human understanding and subtle analysis of contemporary culture’. Many times in Bellow’s novels we are reminded that ‘being human’ isn’t the automatic condition of every human being. Like freedom or sanity, it is not a given but a gift, a talent, an accompl ishment, an objective. The busiest sections of the Chicago bookstores, I noticed, were those marked ‘Personal Growth’.
ellauri222.html on line 886: Ozymandias (/ˌɒziˈmændiəs/ oz-ee-MAN-dee-əs; real name Adrian Alexander Veidt) is a fictional anti-villain in the graphic novel limited series Watchmen, published by DC Comics. Created by Alan Moore and Dave Gibbons, named "Ozymandias" in the manner of Ramesses II, his name recalls the famous poem by Percy Bysshe Shelley, which takes as its theme the fleeting nature of empire and is excerpted as the epigraph of one of the chapters of Watchmen. Ozymandias is ranked number 25 on Wizard's Top 200 Comic Book Characters list and number 21 on IGN's Top 100 Villains list. No, wait, Ozymandias was a Greek name for the pharaoh Ramesses II (r. 1279–1213 BC), derived from a part of his throne name, Usermaatre. In 1817, Shelley began writing the poem "Ozymandias", after the British Museum acquired the Younger Memnon, a head-and-torso fragment of a statue of Ramesses II, which dated from the 13th century BC. Earlier, in 1816, the Italian archeologist Giovanni Battista Belzoni had "removed" the 7.25-short-ton (6.58 t; 6,580 kg) statue fragment from the Ramesseum, the mortuary templ e of Ramesses II at Thebes, Egypt. The reputation of the statue fragment preceded its arrival to Western Europe; after his Egyptian expedition in 1798, Napoleon Bonaparte had failed to acquire the Younger Memnon for France. Although the British Museum expected delivery of the antiquity in 1818, the Younger Memnon did not arrive in London until 1821. Shelley published his poems before the statue fragment of Ozymandias arrived in Britain, and the view of modern scholarship is that Shelley never saw the statue, although he might have learned about it from news reports, as it was well known even in its previous location near Luxor.
ellauri222.html on line 888: The book Les Ruines, ou méditations sur les révolutions des empires (1791) by Constantin François de Chassebœuf, comte de Volney (1757–1820), first published in an English translation as The Ruins, or a Survey of the Revolutions of Empires (London: Joseph Johnson, 1792) by James Marshall, was an influence on Shelley. helley had expl ored similar themes in his 1813 work Queen Mab. Typically, Shelley published his literary works either anonymously or pseudonymously, under the name "Glirastes", a Graeco-Latin name created by combining the Latin glīs ("dormouse") with the Greek suffix ἐραστής (erastēs, "lover", vitut se on mikään suffixi!); the Glirastes name referred to his wife, Mary Shelley, whom he nicknamed "dormouse". Unikeon köyrijä. Mäuschen, sanoi Percy Marylle niikö Pikin kreikkalainen poikaystävä, setämäinen Kleomenis.
ellauri222.html on line 952: You would pace along Your garden then and a blue moon would bow deepl y.
ellauri222.html on line 980:
ellauri222.html on line 988: Master of the world, I pl ead to You with all my heart in this prayer…
ellauri222.html on line 991: I pl ead to You…
ellauri222.html on line 996: Ellsworth Huntington , (born Sept. 16, 1876, Galesburg, Ill., U.S.—died Oct. 17, 1947, New Haven, Conn.), U.S. geographer who expl ored the influence of climate on civilization. Ellsworth Huntington (September 16, 1876 – October 17, 1947) was a professor of geography at Yale University during the early 20th century, known for his studies on environmental determinism/climatic determinism, economic growth, economic geography, and scientific racism. He served as President of the Ecological Society of America in 1917, the Association of American Geographers in 1923 and President of the Board of Directors of the American Eugenics Society from 1934 to 1938.
ellauri222.html on line 998: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c6/Ellsworth_Huntington.jpg/330px-Ellsworth_Huntington.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri222.html on line 1003: Ellsworth Huntington travelled continental Europe in hopes of better understanding the connection between climate and state success, publishing his findings in The Pulse of Asia, and further elaborating in Civilization and Climate. Like the political geographers, a crucial component of his work was the belief that the climate of North-western Europe was ideal, with areas further north being too cold, and areas further south being too hot, resulting in lazy, laid-back populations. These ideas have powerful connections to colonialism, and may have pl ayed a role in the creation of the 'other' and the literature that many used to justify taking advantage of less advanced nations. Who needs Proust or Tolstoy when it suffices to reach up to get a banana.
ellauri222.html on line 1020: Elokuvassa The Justice League Teräsmiehen muistoa kunnioittava Batman yhdistää voimansa Ihmenaisen, Salaman, Vesimiehen ja Kyborgin kanssa pelastaakseen pl aneetan Steppenwolfilta ja parademoneilta. Tämän perusteella 14 hädässäauttajaa kuulostaa vähän paljolta.
ellauri222.html on line 1031: ploads.s3.amazonaws.com/image.nj.com/home/njo-media/width2048/img/centraljersey_impact/photo/16950177-large.jpeg" width="20%" />
ellauri222.html on line 1033: 7-year-old Megan Kanka is abducted, raped, and murdered by twice-convicted sex offender Jesse Timmendequas. Timmendequas had previously pl eaded guilty to the attempted sexual assault of a 5-year-old girl in 1979 and the sexual assault of a 7-year-old girl in 1981; the second victim was choked until she was unconscious. He served a 9-month sentence in a correctional facility for the attempted assault. For the second offense, he served 6 years of a 10-year term in a correctional center meant specifically to treat male sex offenders.
ellauri222.html on line 1040: Henry admired Timmendiquas. He respected the Wyandots. He could not blame the Indian who fought for his hunting grounds, but, with all the strength of his strong nature, he despised and hated every renegade. Girty knew that the great White Lightning did not like him, and he knew why. Timmendiquas believed that a man should be loyal to his own race, and in his heart he must regard the renegade as what he was—a traitor. "The youth called the Ware fights for his own peopl e," said Timmendiquas gravely.
ellauri222.html on line 1046: A warrior pl anted himself in her way, but, agile as a deer, she darted around him, escaped a second and a third in the same way, and continued her flight toward the winning posts.
ellauri222.html on line 1049: Timmendiquas, the White Lightning of the Wyandots, was the soul of the massed red Indian attack on poor white settler families. Resourceful Henry Ware almost single handedly turns the savage's murderous pl an to nought. "We are not lost," said the scout. "He'll come, that boy, Henry Ware, will. He's only a boy, Major, but he's got a soul like that of the great chief, Timmendiquas. He'll come with the fleet."
ellauri222.html on line 1053: "But a new enemy has come, and, like the buffalo on the far western pl ains, his numbers are past counting. When one is slain five grow in his pl ace. When Manitou made the white man he pl anted in his soul the wish to possess all the earth, and he strives night and day to achieve his wish. While he lives he does not turn back, and dead, his bones claim the ground in which they lie. He may be afraid of the forest and the warrior. The growl of the bear and the scream of the panther may make him tremble, but, trembling, he yet comes."
ellauri222.html on line 1057: "The men of our race are brave, they are warriors, they have not yielded humbly to the coming of the white man. We have fought him many times. Many of the white scalps are in our wigwams. Sometimes Manitou has given to us the victory, and again he has given it to this foe of ours who would eat up our whole country. We were beaten in the attack on the pl ace they call Wareville, we were beaten again in the attack on the great wagon train, and we have failed now in our efforts against the fort and the fleet. Warriors of the allied tribes, is it not so?"
ellauri222.html on line 1063: Henry looked down the sights straight into the face of the Indian, and beheld Timmendiquas, the great White Lightning of the Wyandots. Timmendiquas saw the flash of recognition on the boy´s face and smiled faintly. "Shoot," he said. "You have won the chance." Conflicting emotions filled the soul of Henry Ware. If he spared Timmendiquas it would cost the border many lives. The Wyandot chief could never be anything but the impl acable foe of those who were invading the red man´s hunting grounds. But Henry remembered that this man had saved his life. He had spared him when he was compelled to run the gantlet. The boy could not shoot.
ellauri222.html on line 1067: Then he was gone in the forest, and Henry went back to the battle field, where the firing had now wholly ceased. The white victory was compl ete. Many Indians had fallen. Their losses here and at the river had been so great that it would be long before they could be brought into action again. But the renegades had made good their escape. They did not find the body of a single one of them, and it was certain that they were living to do more mischief. Noble warriors don´t change sides, they stick to their own color scheme.
ellauri222.html on line 1080: Sir Walter Raleigh was one of the most famous expl orers of Elizabeth I's reign. His courage and good looks made him a favourite of the Queen's, and she rewarded him for his handsomeness. Raleigh was also a scholar and a poet, but he is usually remembered for introducing the essential potato, and the addictive tobacco.
ellauri222.html on line 1113: VIDEO
ellauri223.html on line 33: Aurinkovaltio play:none">Dystopiaa
ellauri223.html on line 46: Käkättävä Sale luki Mexicossa kirjasta, johon oli koottu eri aikakausien unelmavaltioita eli utopioita. Niiden joukossa oli tää ennestään mulle tuntematon Tommaso. Kyllä sekin kuvitelma oli vitun dystooppista totalitarismia. Apinoiden pl aneetta muistutti termiittipesää enemmän kuin Tommason myöhemmän maanmiehen, bensa-aseman kattoon jalat alaspäin ripustetun, kärpästen vaivaaman Mussolinin pahimmissakaan painajaisissa.
ellauri223.html on line 52: Aurinkokaupunki esitetään dialogina Johanniittain ritarikunnan pikashakin suurmestarin (grand master, GM) ja genovalaisen merikapteenin (Capt. Haddock) välillä. Sen esikuvana on toiminut Platonin Valtio sekä Timaioksessa oleva Atlantiksen kuvaus. Teos kuvaa teokraattisen yhteiskunnan, jossa tavarat, naiset ja lapset ovat yhteisomistuksessa. (Se muuten luetellaan katolisen kirkon heresioiden luettelossa nimellä barallotit. The Barallots were a sect, deemed heretical, at Bologna in Italy, who had all things in common, even their wives and children. They gave so readily into all manner of sensual pl easures, that they were also termed JIT Compilers.) Teoksessa on selvästi vaikutteita Picatrixista, arabialaisesta maagisen kaupunkisuunnittelun oppaasta.
ellauri223.html on line 58: Although the community of wives is not instituted among the other inhabitants of their province, among them it is in use after this manner: All things are common with them, and their dispensation is by the authority of the magistrates. Arts and honors and pl easures are common, and are held in such a manner that no one can appropriate anything to himself. Hey Tommaso, hold your horses, the end of the line is over there!
ellauri223.html on line 64: There are occupations, mechanical and theoretical, common to both men and women, with this difference, that the occupations which require more hard work, and walking a long distance, are practised by men, such as pl oughing, sowing, gathering the fruits, working at the threshing-floor, stock exchange, and perchance at the vintage. But it is customary to choose women for milking the cows and for making cheese. In like manner, they go to the gardens near to the outskirts of the city both for collecting the pl ants and for cultivating them. In fact, all sedentary and stationary pursuits are practised by the women, such as weaving, spinning, sewing, cutting the hair, shaving, dispensing medicines, selling arse, and making all kinds of garments. They are, however, excluded from working in wood and the manufacture of arms. If a woman is fit to paint, she is not prevented from doing so; nevertheless, music (song and dance) is given over to the women alone, because they pl ease the more, and of a truth to pretty boys also. But the women have not the practise of the drum and the horn. Pretty boys take care of faggots.
ellauri223.html on line 66: Capt. Moreover, the race is managed for the good of the commonwealth, and not of private individuals, and the magistrates must be obeyed. They deny what we hold—viz., that it is natural to man to recognize his offspring and to educate them, and to use his wife and house and children as his own. For they say that children are bred for the preservation of the species and not for individual pl easure, as St. Thomas also asserts. Therefore the breeding of children has reference to the commonwealth, and not to individuals, except in so far as they are constituents of the commonwealth. And since individuals for the most part bring forth children wrongly and educate them wrongly, they consider that they remove destruction from the State, and therefore for this reason, with most sacred fear, they commit the education of the children, who, as it were, are the element of the republic, to the care of magistrates; for the safety of the community is not that of a few. And thus they distribute male and female breeders of the best natures according to philosophical rules. Plato thinks that this distribution ought to be made by lot, lest some incel men seeing that they are kept away from the beautiful women, should rise up with anger and hatred against the magistrates; and he thinks further that those who do not deserve cohabitation with the more beautiful women, should be deceived while the lots are drawn by the magistrates, so that at all times the women who are suitably second rate should fall to their lot, not those whom they desire. Stop the steal!
ellauri223.html on line 68: This shrewdness, however, is not necessary among the inhabitants of the City of the Sun. For with them deformity is unknown. When the women are exercised they get a clear compl exion, and become strong of limb, tall and agile, and with them beauty consists in tallness and strength. Tanakka, punakka ja rivakka, täst mie piän! Therefore, if any woman dyes her face, so that it may become beautiful, or uses high-heeled boots so that she may appear tall, or garments with trains to cover her wooden shoes, she is condemned to capital punishment. But if the women should even desire them they have no facility for doing these things. For who indeed would give them this facility? Further, they assert that among us abuses of this kind arise from the leisure and sloth of women. By these means they lose their color and have pale compl exions, and become feeble and small. For this reason they are without proper compl exions, use high sandals, and become beautiful not from strength, but from slothful tenderness. And thus they ruin their own tempers and natures, and consequently those of their offspring. Furthermore, if at any time a man is taken captive with ardent love for a certain woman, the two are allowed to converse and joke together and to give one another garlands of flowers or leaves, and to make verses. But if the race is endangered, by no means is further union between them permitted. Her fanny must be locked in a love girdle, and his pecker lassoed and bound behind his butt. Moreover, the love born of eager desire is not known among them; only that born of friendship. LOL
ellauri223.html on line 70: Domestic affairs and partnerships are of little account, because, excepting the sign of honor, each one receives what he is in need of. To the heroes and heroines of the republic, it is customary to give the pl easing gifts of honor, beautiful wreaths, sweet food, heroine, or spl endid clothes, while they are feasting. In the daytime all use white garments within the city, but at night or outside the city they use red garments either of wool or silk. They hate black as they do dung, and therefore they dislike the Japanese, who are fond of black, and Africans, for obvious reasons. Pride they consider the most execrable vice, and one who acts proudly is chastised with the most ruthless correction. Wherefore no one thinks it lowering to wait at table or to work in the kitchen or fields or clean the toilets. All work they call discipl ine, and thus they say that it is honorable to go on foot, to do any act of nature, to see with the eye, and to speak with the tongue, and waft with the tail; and when there is need, they distinguish philosophically between tears and spittle. Every man who, when he is told off to work, does his duty, is considered very honorable.
ellauri223.html on line 72: But in the City of the Sun, while duty and work are distributed among all, it only falls to each one to work for about four hours every day. The remaining hours are spent in learning joyously, in debating, in reading, in reciting, in writing, in walking, in exercising the mind and body, and with pl ay. They allow no game which is pl ayed while sitting or lying on top of one another, neither the single die nor dice, nor chess, nor others like these. But they pl ay with the ball, with the sack, with the rod, with the hoop, with wrestling, with scratching matches at the stake. They say, moreover, that grinding poverty renders men worthless, cunning, sulky, thievish, insidious, vagabonds, liars, false witnesses, etc.; and that wealth makes them insolent, proud, ignorant, traitors, assumers of what they know not, deceivers, boasters, wanting in affection, slanderers, etc. But with them all the rich and poor together make up the community. They are rich because they want nothing, poor because they possess nothing. Hey is this communism or what?
ellauri223.html on line 84: Capt. Their food consists of flesh, butter, honey, cheese, garden herbs, and vegetables of various kinds. They were unwilling at first to slay animals, because it seemed cruel; but thinking afterward that is was also cruel to destroy herbs which have a share of sensitive feeling, they saw that they would perish from hunger unless they did an unjustifiable action for the sake of justifiable ones, and so now they all eat meat. Nevertheless, they do not kill willingly useful animals, such as oxen and horses. They observe the difference between useful and harmful foods, and for this they empl oy the science of medicine. They always change their food. First they eat flesh, then fish, then afterward they go back to flesh, and nature is never incommoded or weakened. The old peopl e use the more digestible kind of food, and take three meals a day, eating only a little. But the general community eat twice, and the boys four times, that they may satisfy nature. The length of their lives is generally 100 years, but often they reach 200.
ellauri223.html on line 86: As regards drinking, they are extremely moderate. Wine is never given to young peopl e until they are ten years old, unless the state of their health demands it. After their tenth year they take it diluted with water, and so do the women, but the old men of fifty and upward use little or no water. They eat the most healthy things, according to the time of the year.
ellauri223.html on line 90: And in other ways they labor to cure the epilepsy, with which they are often troubled. G.M. A sign this disease is of wonderful cleverness, for from it Hercules, Scrotus, Socrates, Callimachus, and Mahomet have suffered. This they cure by means of prayers to heaven, by strengthening the head, by taking acid, by pl anned gymnastics, and with fat cheese-bread sprinkled with the flour of wheaten corn. My, that is yummy, I tell you.
ellauri223.html on line 92: They know also a secret for renovating sex life after about the seventieth year, and for ridding it of the wilted dick affliction, and this they do by a pl easing and indeed wonderful art, using young girls. But let's not go into that right now.
ellauri223.html on line 96: Capt. This is the point I was just thinking of expl aining. Everyone is judged by the first master of his trade, and thus all the head artificers are judges. They punish with exile, with flogging, with blame, with deprivation of the common table, with exclusion from the church and from the company of women. When there is a case in which great injury has been done, it is punished with death, and they repay an eye with an eye, a nose for a nose, a tooth for a tooth, a woman (or half a camel) for a woman, and so on, according to Hammurabi's law of retaliation.
ellauri223.html on line 98: No one is killed or stoned unless by the hands of the peopl e, the accuser and the witnesses beginning first. For they have no executioners and lictors, lest the State should sink into ruin. The choice of death is given to the rest of the peopl e, who enclose the lifeless remains in little bags and burn them by the appl ication of fire, while exhorters are present for the purpose of advising concerning a good death. Nevertheless, the whole nation laments and beseeches God that his anger may be appeased, being in grief that it should, as it were, have to cut off a rotten member of the State. Certain officers talk to and convince the accused man by means of arguments until he himself acquiesces in the sentence of death passed upon him, or else... But if a crime has been committed against the liberty of the republic, or against God, or against the supreme magistrates, there is immediate censure without pity. These motherfuckers are punished with death.
ellauri223.html on line 107: No chance is given for idolatry. The statues and pictures of the heroes, however, are there, and the spl endid women set apart to become mothers often look at them, wetting their pants.
ellauri223.html on line 109: They repeat but one prayer, which asks for health of body and of mind, and happiness for themselves and all peopl e, and they conclude it with the petition "As it seems best to God." Inshallah. C.O. Rosenius olis tyytyväinen thän lisäyxeen.
ellauri223.html on line 124: It is often associated with a version of the problem of evil: if some things in the world were to be admitted to be evil, this could be taken to reflect badly on the creator of the world, who would then be difficult to admit to be compl etely good. The merit of the doctrine in serving as a response to this version of the problem of evil is disputed.
ellauri223.html on line 126: The doctrine is sometimes said to be rooted in Plato. While Plato never directly stated the doctrine, it was developed, based on his remarks on evil, by the Neopl atonist philosopher Plotinus, chiefly in the eighth tractate of his First Ennead.
ellauri223.html on line 127: Neopl atonism was influential on St. Augustine of Hippo , with whom the doctrine is most associated. Augustine, in his Enchiridion, wrote:
ellauri223.html on line 153: New Atlantis is an incompl ete utopian novel by Sir Francis Bacon, published posthumously in 1626. It appeared unheralded and tucked into the back of a longer work of natural history, Sylva sylvarum (forest of materials). In New Atlantis, Bacon portrayed a vision of the future of human discovery and knowledge, expressing his aspirations and ideals for humankind. The novel depicts the creation of a utopian land where "generosity and enlightenment, dignity and spl endour, piety and public spirit" are the commonly held qualities of the inhabitants of the mythical Bensalem. The pl an and organisation of his ideal college, Salomon's House (or Shlomo's House), envisioned the modern research university in both appl ied and pure sciences.
ellauri223.html on line 157: The novel depicts a mythical island, Bensalem, which is discovered by the crew of a European ship after they are lost in the Pacific Ocean somewhere west of Peru. The minimal pl ot serves the gradual unfolding of the island, its customs, but most importantly, its state-sponsored scientific institution, Salomon's House, "which house or college ... is the very eye of this kingdom."
ellauri223.html on line 159: Many aspects of the society and history of the island are described, such as the Christian religion – which is reported to have been born there as a copy of the Bible and a letter from the Apostle Saint Bartholomew arrived there miraculously, a few years after the Ascension of Jesus; a cultural feast in honour of the family institution, called "the Feast of the Family"; a college of sages, the Salomon's House, "the very eye of the kingdom", to which order "God of heaven and earth had vouchsafed the grace to know the works of Creation, and the secrets of them", as well as "to discern between divine miracles, works of nature, works of art, and other impostures and illusions of all sorts"; and a series of instruments, process and methods of scientific research that were empl oyed in the island by the Salomon's House.
ellauri223.html on line 162: The inhabitants of Bensalem are described as having a high moral character and honesty, as no official accepts any payment from individuals. The peopl e are also described as chaste and pious, as said by an inhabitant of the island:
ellauri223.html on line 166: I remember I have read in one of your European books, of an holy hermit amongst you that desired to see the Spirit of Fornication; and there appeared to him a little foul ugly Aethiop. Fuckin niggah. But if he had desired to see the Spirit of Chastity of Bensalem, it would have appeared to him in the likeness of a fair (paleface) beautiful Cherubim. For there is nothing amongst mortal men more fair and admirable, than the chaste minds of this peopl e. Know therefore, that with them there are no chicken stews, frozen or otherwise, no dissolute houses, no courtesans, nor anything of that kind.
ellauri223.html on line 168: In the last third of the book, the Head of the Salomon's House takes one of the European visitors to show him all the scientific background of Salomon's House, where experiments are conducted in Baconian method to understand and conquer nature (no tietysti), and to appl y the collected knowledge to the betterment of society. Namely: 1) the end, or purpose, of their foundation; 2) the preparations they have for their works; 3) the several empl oyments and functions whereto their fellows are assigned; 4) and the ordinances and rites which they observe.
ellauri223.html on line 170: He portrayed a vision of the future of human discovery and knowledge. The pl an and organisation of his ideal college, "Shlomo's House", envisioned the modern research university in both appl ied and pure science. The end of their foundation is thus described: "The end of our foundation is the knowledge of causes, and secret motions of things; and the enlarging of the bounds of human empire, to the effecting of all things possible". Vitun nilkki, hemmetin teknofriikki humanisti.
ellauri223.html on line 182: Bacon stated that he had three goals: to uncover truth, to serve his country, and to serve his church. He sought to achieve these goals by seeking a prestigious post. Yet he failed to gain a position that he thought would lead him to success. He showed signs of sympathy to Puritanism, attending the sermons of the Puritan chapl ain of Gray's Inn and accompanying his mother to the Templ e Church to hear Walter Travers. In the Parliament of 1586, he openly urged execution for the Catholic Mary, Queen of Scots. He advocated for the union of England and Scotland, which made him a significant influence toward the consolidation of the United Kingdom; and he later would advocate for the integration of Ireland into the Union. Closer constitutional ties, he believed, would bring greater peace and strength to these countries. What a motherfucker.
ellauri223.html on line 184: About this time, he again approached his powerful uncle for help; this move was followed by his rapid progress at the bar. Despite his assignations, he was unable to gain the status and notoriety of others. In a pl an to revive his position he unsuccessfully courted the wealthy young widow Lady Elizabeth Hatton. His courtship failed after she broke off their relationship upon accepting marriage to Sir Edward Coke, a further spark of enmity between the men. Things went better with Coke than with a BLT.
ellauri223.html on line 188: When he was 36, Bacon courted Elizabeth Hatton, a young widow of 20. Reportedly, she broke off their relationship upon accepting marriage to a wealthier man, Bacon's rival, Sir Edward Coke. Years later, Bacon still wrote of his regret that the marriage to Hatton had not taken pl ace.
ellauri223.html on line 190: At the age of 45, Bacon married Alice Barnham, the 13-year-old daughter of a well-connected London alderman and MP. Bacon wrote two sonnets proclaiming his love for Alice. The first was written during his courtship and the second on his wedding day, 10 May 1606. When Bacon was appointed lord chancellor, "by special Warrant of the King", Lady Bacon was given precedence over all other Court ladies. Bacon's personal secretary and chapl ain, William Rawley, wrote in his biography of Bacon that his marriage was one of "much conjugal love and respect", mentioning a robe of honour that he gave to Alice and which "she wore unto her dying day, being twenty years and more after his death".
ellauri223.html on line 192: However, an increasing number of reports circulated about friction in the marriage, with speculation that this may have been due to Alice's making do with less money than she had once been accustomed to. It was said that she was strongly interested in fame and fortune, and when household finances dwindled, she compl ained bitterly. Bunten wrote in her Life of Alice Barnham that, upon their descent into debt, she went on trips to ask for financial favours and assistance from their circle of friends. Bacon disinherited her upon discovering her secret romantic relationship with Sir Frodo Underhill. He subsequently rewrote his will, which had previously been very generous—leaving her lands, goods, and income—and instead revoked it all.
ellauri223.html on line 200: In 1621, Bacon, by now styled as Viscount St Albans, was accused of taking bribes, heavily fined, and removed from Parliament and all offices. Lady Bacon personally pl eaded with the Marquis of Buckingham for the restoration of some of Bacon's salary and pensions, to no effect. They lost York House and left the city in 1622.
ellauri223.html on line 202: Reports of increasing friction in the marriage appeared, with speculation that some of this may have also been due to financial resources not being as abundantly available to Alice as she was accustomed to in the past. Alice was reportedly interested in fame and fortune, and when reserves of money were no longer available, there was constant compl aining about where all the money was going.
ellauri223.html on line 222: Several authors believe that, despite his marriage, Bacon was primarily attracted to men. Forker, for exampl e, has expl ored the "historically documentable sexual preferences" of both Francis Bacon and King James I and concluded they were both oriented to "masculine love", a contemporary term that "seems to have been used exclusively to refer to the sexual preference of men for members of their own gender."
ellauri223.html on line 226: The Jacobean antiquarian Sir Simonds D'Ewes (Bacon's fellow Member of Parliament) impl ied there had been a question of bringing him to trial for buggery, which his brother Anthony Bacon had also been charged with.
ellauri226.html on line 33: CHEESE! play:none">Publikaaneja
ellauri226.html on line 38: Kuten monissa albumeissa ollaan havaittu, paskaviihteen ammattilaisilla on politiikan teossa lusikkansa sopassa. Tässä lisää sattumia sopasta. Amerikan 2 puoluetta ovat publikaanit ja republikaanit. Nasaretilaisen pubikavereita molemmat. Väliin vetovuorossa on talousliberaalit pl utokraatit, väliin arvokonservatiivit oligarkit. Samoja Parta-Kallen perivihulaisia. Talouskonservatiivina arvonihilistinä en voi sietää niitä.
ellauri226.html on line 66: In late 1964, as Brian Wilson's industry profile grew, he became acquainted with various individuals from around the Los Angeles music scene. He also took an increasing interest in recreational drugs (particularly marijuana, LSD, and Desbutal). According to his then-wife Marilyn, Wilson's new friends "had the gift of gab. All of a sudden Brian was in Hollywood—these peopl e talk a language that was fascinating to him. Anybody that was different and talked cosmic or whatever he liked it." Wilson's closest friend in this period was Loren Schwartz, an aspiring talent agent that he met at a recording studio. Schwartz introduced Wilson to marijuana and LSD, as well as a wealth of literature commonly read by college students. During his first LSD trip, Wilson had what he considered to be "a very religious experience" and claimed to have seen God. God has subsequently personally confirmed this.
ellauri226.html on line 68: In November 1965, early in the sessions for the Beach Boys' 11th studio LP Pet Sounds, Wilson began experimenting with the idea of recording an album focused on humor and laughter. He was intent on making Pet Sounds a compl ete departure from previous Beach Boys releases and did not wish to work with his usual lyricist, Mike Love, who was such a sourpuss.
ellauri226.html on line 73: Love’s performance on behalf of Trump on Sunday was the main attraction for the event, according to the LA Times. Tickets ran from $2,800 per person to up to $150,000 for a coupl e to be considered “co-chairs’’ of the event.
ellauri226.html on line 76: ploads/chorus_image/image/9209319/gyi0064398765.0.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri226.html on line 83: Waters criticised the West for suppl ying Ukraine with weapons, blaming Washington in particular, and has also criticised NATO, accusing it of provoking Russia. Floydin This is not a drill kiertue Krakovassa peruttiin. Menköön Moskovaan laulamaan toivottivat tuohtuneet polakit.
ellauri226.html on line 93: Sea and Sardinia is a travel book by the English writer D. H. Lawrence. It describes a brief excursion undertaken in January 1921 by Lawrence and his wife Frieda, a.k.a. Queen Bee, from Taormina in Sicily to the interior of Sardinia. They visited Cagliari, Mandas, Sorgono, and Nuoro. His visit to Nuoro was a kind of homage to Grazia Deledda but involved no personal encounter. Despite the brevity of his visit, Lawrence distils an essence of the island and its peopl e that is still recognisable today.
ellauri226.html on line 118: Sardegna was full of Lawrentian tourist horrors: hunger, bad light, and sharing space with peopl e who annoy you. When Frieda asked what one does in Mandas, the locals told her, “Niente! Kiva pl ane etta, ei ketään kotona.
ellauri226.html on line 120: The “quite pl easant woman” who fed the Lawrences was Agostino’s grandmother. He proudly showed us her picture, along with a brochure for the Festival D.H. Lawrence, which takes pl ace every August. Lawrences, who, in the impoverished Sardinia of their day couldn’t find anything but cabbage soup and hard bread.
ellauri226.html on line 122: There was a David Herbert Lawrence pl aque on the street. Inside the tiny station were two more. It seemed a lot of pl aques for a guy who spent one night there. “Blessed is he that expecteth nothing,” he wrote of Sorgono, “for he shall not be disappointed.” More Niente. “A dreary hole!” Lawrence muttered. “A cold, hopeless, lifeless, Saturday afternoon-weary village.” The food was bad. The bedsheets were stained. Peopl e cheerfully relieved themselves on the street. What limp parsnips too! “Why are you so indignant?” the Q.B. asked. “It’s all life.”
ellauri226.html on line 124: We, too, arrived on a Saturday afternoon. There was nowhere to eat and nothing to do, other than lounge by the lifeless station, reading Lawrence’s catalogue of compl aints. But then I looked up to find the very “pink-washed building” with the very same name (Risveglio) as the horrible inn in the book. “It can’t be the same one,” I said. “There’s no pl aque. Wow, there's a traffic sign, but it's not in English?"
ellauri226.html on line 133:
ellauri226.html on line 137: For a moment everyone just looked hostile. Then they all started talking at once. The bartender said his grandmother owned the pl ace then. Another guy said, No, that was a different owner.
ellauri226.html on line 140: Nuovo, however, looked pl acid and tame. Nuovo was home to the Nobel laureate Grazia Deledda, whose novels Lawrence so admired, but her modest birthpl ace was closed. We walked around aimlessly, seeing the pl ace through his eyes, but, of course, through Lawrence’s eyes “there’s nothing to see.” This is no longer quite true; there are two good museums in town. But, by now, it had taken on the sound of a mantra. “Sights are an irritating bore,” he wrote. “Happy is the town that has nothing to show.”
ellauri226.html on line 158: Floridan latinokuvernööri de Santis kerää irtopisteitä lennätettyään paperittomia kolleegoja Texasista hampparien hinnalla kerjäämään Obaman etunurmikolle pl utokraattien onnellisten saarelle Marthas Vineyardille. Jännä miten arvokonservatiivien naamat on tolleen kaikki muotopuolia ja vinoja. Vino maailmankuva vääntää niiden naamavärkit vänkyrään. De Santis on nyt Floridassa suositumpi kuin Aku konsanaan. Reunimmainen kaveri äärioikealla muistuttaa vähän Jaakko Lindgreniä struumaisena.
ellauri226.html on line 165: Modernin sodankäynnin tärkeimmät aseet ovat nälistys, trollaus, miehittämätön pommitus ja matuaitaus. Nälistämällä USA on jo kauan varmistellut ettei sille nouse mistään kilpailijaa. Kybersodalla ja drooneilla on se yhteinen pl ussa ettei tarvi ize nousta perseeltään, kuha painaa nappia ja antaa paukkua. Jossain kaukana, ettei tarvi kuulla edes paukkuja. Uusin kekka on paimentaa kurjalistolaumoja rajan yli kilpailijan puolelle. Niiden varalta alkaa pieni Suomikin rakentaa Trump-tyyppisiä aitoja. Ei niistä ole apua kun tankit alkaa vyöryä itärajalta, mutta pitäähän se nälistetyt kirgiisit ja tshetsheenit poissa pohjoiskarjalaisten tukasta.
ellauri226.html on line 200: P-G:s hustru Ann har inte kontaktförbud, vilket förvaltare och advokat önskar att hon skulle få. Och gifta kvinnor anser sig trots tyngande hustrupl ikter och otrohetsproblem inte ha det minsta.
ellauri226.html on line 206: Detta pl ågade till slutet den ganska begåvade och givande författaren Evander som han var i några romaner på 70-talet.
ellauri226.html on line 213: While local demographics and neighborhoods are undeniably subject to change, it is rare for a location to experience a major transformation in racial demographics in less than 50 years. Yet this is exactly what has happened in The Bronx between 1950 and 1980. As indicated by the 1950 the ethnic makeupof The Bronx was predominantly white. The census for 2000 indicates that whites (that is, what the U.S. Census labels “white, non-Hispanic”) now compose a distinct minority in The Bronx. The expl anations for this remarkable change are compl ex. LOL actually they aren't, as we shall see.
ellauri226.html on line 218: Of approximately 1.30 million peopl e, over 90% of the population of The Bronx,
ellauri226.html on line 238: In 1980, they were already 745,000 "peopl e."
ellauri226.html on line 246: considered a very tranquil and even boring pl ace, almost like a suburb, causing Nash to lament
ellauri226.html on line 247: the borough because he saw it as not being a very exciting pl ace.
ellauri226.html on line 256: often sent him outside at a young age to pl ay unaccompanied. He recalled:
ellauri226.html on line 258: I grew up on the street, which is to say that my peopl e sent me on the street to pl ay. Really, I was told to go out and pl ay; my mom she wouldn’t care a bit. My mother, she just said go out and pl ay. By five years old I was four or five years old. So say I was four years old. I was
ellauri226.html on line 259: allowed to and go to Poe Park; so we would pl ay all sorts of games over
ellauri226.html on line 267: in the 1950s and 1960s. Mrs. Roby described growing up in “a very, very safe neighborhood." Like Derrick, she goes on and on to speak about pl aying outside and unlocked doors as evidence of the apparent safety and tranquility of the neighborhood. It was like Moomindale! Ei muumitaloa lukita yöxi hei Muu-u-mi!
ellauri226.html on line 309: was coupl ed with a rise in crime and drug use.
ellauri226.html on line 321: Eleanor Kapl an, this girl, she was a Jewess I remember. She was
ellauri226.html on line 325: While the failed shooting of Eleanor Kapl an was apparently not front page all over the news, it was enough for him and his family to move.
ellauri226.html on line 334: While crime was on the rise throughout the city, the increasing numbers in The Bronx were astounding. For exampl e, the number of
ellauri226.html on line 338: seemed to have compl ete control of the South Bronx and the crummy
ellauri226.html on line 354: The chaos reached its peak in 1977 when a July black-out brought a dramatic increase of responsible arsonists in that same Stadium where Cosell as the Yankees pl ayed in the 1977 World Series, as part of an insurance conspiracy, however.
ellauri226.html on line 378: that had been considered “safe” in the 1950s and 1960s began to experience rising crime and drug rates. While the fires that pl agued the South
ellauri226.html on line 384: his Fordham neighborhood. For Derrick, exampl es of how the neighborhood changed were a subway robbery and the burglary of her home. These exampl es of petty crime prompted him and his family to move to another section
ellauri226.html on line 388: says that the environment of the school had compl etely changed and his
ellauri226.html on line 423: As Roby expl ained, the building’s original wiring could not load
ellauri226.html on line 429: the only change; services companies also began to be limited. Derrick recalls simpl e services like garbage pick-up within building and the washing and waxing of the floors and less frequent, becoming less it stopped all together.
ellauri226.html on line 441: It was impossible for these former white residents to recognize that the causes of the increase in crime and drug use had to do with themselves, the white laissez-faire economics they supported. It is not that extremely compl icated to see, and has a great deal more to with capitalism than race.
ellauri226.html on line 447: competition within the city as suburban residents could now appl y. The
ellauri226.html on line 448: influx of poor minority families in the 1950s and 1960s was thus cleverly met with a deteriorating and poor job market and limited empl oyment opportunities. The declining job market continued into the 1970s when approximately 300 companies empl oying 10,000 workers went out of business or moved out of The Bronx between 1970 and 1977. Many of these businesses used low income and unskilled workers. By 1976 the long-term economic problems had taken their toll and the mayor's office estimated that between 25-30% of the city’s eligible work force was unempl oyed.
ellauri226.html on line 452: In this year it became public knowledge that the city funds had been depl eted by nasty leeches and its capital was all gone. Their action had left the city penniless and unable to pay even the top brass. This led to the collapse of the city’s government,
ellauri226.html on line 457: turned to welfare after businesses left The Bronx or closed causing unempl oyment. Fucking damn immigrants.
ellauri226.html on line 459: The number of minority families coming through and unempl oyment on the rise, some
ellauri226.html on line 464: As the economic crisis worsened and city residents appl ied for welfare, particularly in The Bronx, the city simpl y reached its financial breaking point, with most of the welfare payments going to buy drugs. No wonder the poor turned to crime to solve their economic problems, seeing as the filthy rich seemed to be rolling in the dough. At the time the assumption was made by many older white residents
ellauri226.html on line 475: enjoy similar all-American white immigrant lifestyles. When new Hispanic groups and African Americans moved beyond the South Bronx, seeking to avoid the crime and drug use that had already seized the South Bronx, however, they brought their crummy lifestyles along. These cultural peculiarities seemed to clash with those that were in pl ace with the older white immigrants, which only exacerbated the suspicions many whites already had regarding the perceived connection between race and crime rates.
ellauri226.html on line 478: neighbors pl ayed at all hours of the night, their loud merrymaking in the sack, and their tendency to throw garbage out of their windows. For Derrick, a graduate student at the time, the difference in lifestyles between him and his new neighbors became too much, and he eventually moved out of the apartment because of the behavior of his Hispanic neighbors.
ellauri226.html on line 480: For Roby (my mom), the differences of the new minority groups and the old Jewish, Italian, and Irish immigrants was clear, especially given the unique rules that governed her Parkchester Jewish community. Parkchester was originally privately owned by the Metropolitan Life, who empl oyed a private police force to ensure law and order and instituted very specific rules that bound the residents of the community, everything from double parking and noise levels to not walking on the grass.
ellauri226.html on line 493: a pull effect from the growth of the suburbs and the building of many new highways, as well as rail lines that allowed mid-income paleface peopl e to
ellauri226.html on line 500: Long Island and Westchester County, New York area, as well as northern New Jersey, where Philip Roth's folks lived with a flock of other Mockies. Homes in new communities were comparatively inexpensive. For exampl e, in 1948, the going rate for a home in Levittown was $8,000, which, if paid for using a low-interest
ellauri226.html on line 529: The notmees who wanted to move out of the worst areas of The Bronx "chose" to stay in Bronx and just moved to the pl aces vacated by the suburban migration of the whites. The same push is now being felt in Nassau County and New Jersey, where white homeowners are pressured to only sell to whites to prevent another wave of immigrants with their smelly dishes and noisy habits, not to mention the sex, drugs, and rap "music".
ellauri236.html on line 33: FUX NEWS play:none">Rupusakkia
ellauri236.html on line 52: But poverty has grown during his presidency, and his popularity levels took a hit over his handling of the pandemic, which he dismissed as the "little flu," before the virus killed more than 680,000 peopl e in the country.
ellauri236.html on line 54: Environmentalists also warned that the future of the rainforest could be at stake in this election, as Bolsonaro's government had become known for its support of ruthless expl oitation of land in the Amazon, leading to record deforestation figures.
ellauri236.html on line 61: Portuguese-language searches for basic election-related terms such as “fraud,” “intervention” and “ballots” on Facebook and Instagram, which are owned by Meta, have overwhelmingly directed peopl e toward groups pushing claims questioning the integrity of the vote or openly agitating for a military coup, researchers from the advocacy group SumOfUs found. On TikTok, five out of eight top search results for the keyword “ballots” were for terms such as “rigged ballots” and “ballots being manipulated.”
ellauri236.html on line 63: The research is the latest in a growing body of evidence that social pl atforms are failing to prevent a flood of disinformation — some of it tinged with violence — on their services ahead of the runoff election Sunday between President Jair Bolsonaro and former president Luiz Inácio Lula da Silva. Brazilian lawmakers last week granted the nation’s elections chief unilateral power to force tech companies to remove misinformation within two hours of the content being posted — one of the most aggressive legal measures against North American social media giants that any country has taken.
ellauri236.html on line 73: A test of Meta and YouTube’s ad systems by the human rights group Global Witness revealed that the companies approved large numbers of misleading ads, including spots that encouraged peopl e not to vote or gave false dates for when ballots could be posted. YouTube said it “reviewed the ads in question and removed those that violated our policies,” although the Global Witness report showed all the ads submitted were approved by the Google-owned site.
ellauri236.html on line 75: They found that five out of seven of the groups recommended by Facebook under searches for the term “intervention” were pushing for a military intervention in Brazil’s election, while five out of seven of the groups recommended under the search term “fraud” encouraged peopl e to join groups that questioned the election’s integrity. The groups have names such “Intervention to Save Brazil” and “Military intervention already.”
ellauri236.html on line 98: One man interviewed by The New York Times pl ayed a video he received on WhatsApp that said Mr. Bolsonaro had visited Russia this year to get President Vladimir V. Putin’s help in fighting the Brazilian left’s pl ans to steal Sunday’s election.
ellauri236.html on line 102: “I look at the things I want to see, and I avoid looking at what they want to show me,” said José Luiz Chaves Fonseca, a turbine engineer for offshore oil pl atforms who was attending the rally this month north of Rio de Janeiro as a Bolsonaro impersonator. “If everyone dressed like this, they wouldn’t be tricked.”
ellauri236.html on line 158: VIDEO
ellauri236.html on line 162: player.com%2Fslide%2F4296884%2F14%2Fimages%2F19%2FJames%2BHadly%2BChase%2B%25281906%2B%25E2%2580%2593%2B1985%2529.jpg&width=960&height=720&typemap=png%3Apng%3B*%3Ajpg&quality=60&use-cache-headers=yes&crop=no&enlarge=no" width="70%" />
ellauri236.html on line 165: After Chase left home at the age of 18, he worked in sales, primarily focusing on books and literature. He sold children's encyclopaedias, while also working in a bookshop. He also served as an executive for a book wholesaler, before turning to a writing career that produced more than 90 mystery books. His interests included photography, of a professional standard, reading, and listening to classical music and opera. As a form of relaxation between novels, he put together highly compl icated and sophisticated Meccano models.
ellauri236.html on line 169: Prohibition and the ensuing Great Depression in the US (1929–39) had given rise to the Chicago gangster culture prior to World War II. This, combined with Chase's book trade experience, convinced him that there was a big demand for gangster stories. After reading James M. Cain's novel The Postman Always Rings Twice (1934), and having read about the American gangster Ma Barker and her sons, and with the help of maps and a slang dictionary, he wrote No Orchids for Miss Blandish in his spare time, he claimed over a period of six weekends, though his papers suggest it took longer. The book achieved remarkable notoriety and became one of the best-selling books of the decade. It was the subject of the 1944 essay "Raffles and Miss Blandish" by George Orwell (alla ). Chase and Robert Nesbitt adapted it to a stage pl ay of the same name which ran in London's West End to good reviews. The 1948 film adaptation was widely denounced as salacious due to the film's portrayal of violence and sexuality. Robert Aldrich did a remake, The Grissom Gang, in 1971.
ellauri236.html on line 184: Miss Blandish, the daughter of a millionaire, is kidnapped by some gangsters who are almost immediately surprised and killed off by a larger and better organized gang. They hold her to ransom and extract half a million dollars from her father. Their original pl an had been to kill her as soon as the ransom-money was received, but a chance keeps her alive. One of the gang is a young man named Slim, whose sole pl easure in life consists in driving knives (well, his prick as well, got to give that much to him) into other peopl e's bellies. In childhood he has graduated by cutting up living animals with a pair of rusty scissors. Slim is sexually impotent, but takes a kind of fancy to Miss Blandish. Slim's mother, who is the real brains of the gang, sees in this the chance of curing Slim's impotence, and decides to keep Miss Blandish in custody till Slim shall have succeeded in raping her. After many efforts and much persuasion, including the flogging of Miss Blandish with a length of rubber hosepipe, the rape is achieved. (Ei se ihan näin mennyt, George!) Meanwhile Miss Blandish's father has hired a private detective, and by means of bribery and torture the detective and the police manage to round up and exterminate the whole gang. Slim escapes with Miss Blandish and is killed after a final juicy rape, and the detective prepares to restore Miss Blandish to her pristine shape. By this time, however, she has developed such a taste for Slim's caresses(3) that she feels unable to live without him, and she jumps, out of the window of a sky-scraper. Footnote 1945. Another reading of the final episode is possible. It may mean merely that Miss Blandish is pregnant, i.e. she is damaged goods. Maybe she is sad that the baby's dad is dead. But the "interpretation" I have given above seems more in keeping with the general brutality of the book.
ellauri236.html on line 186: Several other points need noticing before one can grasp the full impl ications of this book. To begin with, its central story bears a very marked resemblance to William Faulkner's novel, Sanctuary. Therefore, it is not, as one might expect, the product of an illiterate hack, but a brilliant piece of pl agiarism, with hardly a wasted word or a jarring note anywhere. Thirdly, the whole book, récit as well as dialogue, is written in the American language; the author, an Englishman who has (I believe) never been in the United States, seems to have made a compl ete mental transference to the American underworld. Fourthly, and what is worst (from the point of view of a serious writer like myself) the book sold, according to its publishers, no less than half a million copies. Actually 2.
ellauri236.html on line 188: I have already outlined the pl ot, but the subject-matter is much more sordid and brutal than this suggests. The book contains eight full-dress murders, an unassessable number of casual killings and woundings, an exhumation (with a careful reminder of the stench), the flogging of Miss Blandish, the torture of another woman with red-hot cigarette-ends, a strip-tease act, a third-degree scene of unheard-of cruelty and much else of the same kind. It assumes great sexual sophistication in its readers (there is a scene, for instance, in which a gangster, presumably of masochistic tendency, has an orgasm in the moment of being knifed - I can relate to that!), and it takes for granted the most compl ete corruption and self-seeking as the norm of human behaviour. The detective, for instance, is almost as great a rogue as the gangsters, and actuated by nearly the same motives. Like them, he is in pursuit of ‘five hundred grand’. It is necessary to the machinery of the story that Mr. Blandish should be anxious to get his money back, but apart from this, such things as affection, friendship, good nature or even ordinary politeness simpl y do not enter. Nor, to any great extent does normal sexuality. Ultimately only one motive is at work throughout the whole story: the pursuit of power. (Well, there is also the pursuit of spaghetti and some twat.)
ellauri236.html on line 190: It should be noticed that the book is not in the ordinary sense pornography. In this respect it is a flop. Unlike most books that deal in sexual sadism, it lays the emphasis on the cruelty and not on the pl easure. Slim, the ravisher of Miss Blandish, has ‘wet slobbering lips’: this is meant to be disgusting (tho I didn't find it so). But the scenes describing cruelty to women are comparatively perfunctory. The real high-spots of the book are cruelties committed by men upon other men; above all, the third-degreeing of the gangster, Eddie Schultz, who is lashed into a chair and flogged on the windpipe with truncheons, his arms broken by fresh blows as he breaks loose. My conclusion: Chase is a closet homosexual (I should know)! He's an algolagniac, like Swinburne!
ellauri236.html on line 194: As I have mentioned already, No Orchids enjoyed its greatest vogue in 1940, though it was successfully running as a pl ay till some time later. It was, in fact, one of the things that helped to console peopl e for the boredom of being bombed. Early in the war the New Yorker had a picture of a little man approaching a news-stall littered with paper with such headlines as ‘Great Tank Battles in Northern France’, ‘Big Naval Battle in the North Sea’, ‘Huge Air Battles over the Channel’, etc., etc. The little man is saying ‘Action Stories, pl ease’. That little man with his little dick stood for all the drugged millions to whom the world of the gangster and the prize-ring is more ‘real’, more ‘tough’, than such things as crucifixions, wars, revolutions, earthquakes, famines, genocides, holocausts and pestilences. From the point of view of a reader of Action Stories, a description of the London blitz, or of the internal struggles of the European underground parties, would be ‘sissy stuff’. On the other hand, some puny gun-battle in Chicago, resulting in perhaps half a dozen deaths, would seem genuinely ‘tough’. This habit of mind is now extremely widespread. A soldier sprawls in a muddy trench, with the machine-gun bullets crackling a foot or two overhead, and whiles away his intolerable boredom by reading an American gangster story. And what is it that makes that story so exciting? Precisely the fact that peopl e are shooting at each other with machine-guns! Neither the soldier nor anyone else sees anything curious in this. It is taken for granted that an imaginary bullet is more thrilling than a real one. (But note one difference: they get a whacking pile of money and loads of wet twat for it.)
ellauri236.html on line 196: The obvious expl anation is that in real life one is usually a passive victim, whereas in the adventure story one can think of oneself as being at the centre of events. But there is more to it than that. Here it is necessary to refer again to the curious fact of No Orchids being written — with technical errors, perhaps, but certainly with considerable skill — in the American language.
ellauri236.html on line 198: There exists in America an enormous literature of more or less the same stamp as No Orchids. Quite apart from books, there is the huge array of ‘pulp magazines’, graded so as to cater for different kinds of fantasy, but nearly all having much the same mental atmosphere. A few of them go in for straight pornography, but the great majority are quite pl ainly aimed at sadists and masochists. Sold at threepence a copy under the title of Yank Mags(4), these things used to enjoy considerable popularity in England, but when the suppl y dried up owing to the war, no satisfactory substitute was forthcoming. English imitations of the ‘pulp magazine’ do now exist, but they are poor things compared with the original. English crook films, again, never approach the American crook film in brutality. And yet the career of Mr. Chase shows how deep the American influence has already gone. Not only is he himself living a continuous fantasy-life in the Chicago underworld, but he can count on hundreds of thousands of readers who know what is meant by a ‘clipshop’ or the ‘hotsquat’, do not have to do mental arithmetic when confronted by ‘fifty grand’, and understand at sight a sentence like ‘Johnny was a rummy and only two jumps ahead of the nut-factory’. Evidently there are great numbers of English peopl e who are partly americanized in language and, one ought to add, in moral outlook. For there was no popular protest against No Orchids. In the end it was withdrawn, but only retrospectively, when a later work, Miss Callaghan Comes to Grief, brought Mr. Chase's books to the attention of the authorities. Judging by casual conversations at the time, ordinary readers got a mild thrill out of the obscenities of No Orchids, but saw nothing undesirable in the book as a whole. Many peopl e, incidentally, were under the impression that it was an American book reissued in England.
ellauri236.html on line 200: The thing that the ordinary reader ought to have objected to — almost certainly would have objected to, a few decades earlier — was the equivocal attitude towards crime. It is impl ied throughout No Orchids that being a criminal is only reprehensible in the sense that it does not pay. Being a policeman pays better, but there is no moral difference, since the police use essentially criminal methods. In a book like He Won't Need It Now the distinction between crime and crime-prevention practically disappears. This is a new departure for English sensational fiction, in which till recently there has always been a sharp distinction between right and wrong and a general agreement that virtue must triumph in the last chapter. English books glorifying crime (modern crime, that is — pirates and highwaymen are different) are very rare. Even a book like Raffles, as I have pointed out, is governed by powerful taboos, and it is clearly understood that Raffles's crimes must be expiated sooner or later. In America, both in life and fiction, the tendency to tolerate crime, even to admire the criminal so long as he is success, is very much more marked. It is, indeed, ultimately this attitude that has made it possible for crime to flourish upon so huge a scale. Books have been written about Al Capone that are hardly different in tone from the books written about Henry Ford, Stalin, Lord Northcliffe and all the rest of the ‘log cabin to White House’ brigade. And switching back eighty years, one finds Mark Twain adopting much the same attitude towards the disgusting bandit Slade, hero of twenty-eight murders, and towards the Western desperadoes generally. They were successful, they ‘made good’, therefore he admired them.
ellauri236.html on line 202: In a book like No Orchids one is not, as in the old-style crime story, simpl y escaping from dull reality into an imaginary world of action. One's escape is essentially into cruelty and sexual perversion. No Orchids is aimed at the power-instinct, which Raffles or the Sherlock Holmes stories are not. At the same time the English attitude towards crime is not so superior to the American as I may have seemed to impl y. It too is mixed up with power-worship, and has become more noticeably so in the last twenty years. A writer who is worth examining is Edgar Wallace, especially in such typical books as The Orator and the Mr. J. G. Reeder stories. Wallace was one of the first crime-story writers to break away from the old tradition of the private detective and make his central figure a Scotland Yard official. Sherlock Holmes is an amateur, solving his problems without the help and even, in the earlier stories, against the opposition of the police. Moreover, like Lupin, he is essentially an intellectual, even a scientist. He reasons logically from observed fact, and his intellectuality is constantly contrasted with the routine methods of the police. Wallace objected strongly to this slur, as he considered it, on Scotland Yard, and in several newspaper articles he went out of his way to denounce Holmes by name. His own ideal was the detective-inspector who catches criminals not because he is intellectually brilliant but because he is part of an all-powerful organization. Hence the curious fact that in Wallace's most characteristic stories the ‘clue’ and the ‘deduction’ pl ay no part. The criminal is always defeated by an incredible coincidence, or because in some unexpl ained manner the police know all about the crime beforehand. The tone of the stories makes it quite clear that Wallace's admiration for the police is pure bully-worship. A Scotland Yard detective is the most powerful kind of being that he can imagine, while the criminal figures in his mind as an outlaw against whom anything is permissible, like the condemned slaves in the Roman arena. His policemen behave much more brutally than British policemen do in real life — they hit peopl e with out provocation, fire revolvers past their ears to terrify them and so on — and some of the stories exhibit a fearful intellectual sadism. (For instance, Wallace likes to arrange things so that the villain is hanged on the same day as the heroine is married.) But it is sadism after the English fashion: that is to say, it is unconscious, there is not overtly any sex in it, and it keeps within the bounds of the law. The British public tolerates a harsh criminal law and gets a kick out of monstrously unfair murder trials: but still that is better, on any account, than tolerating or admiring crime. If one must worship a bully, it is better that he should be a policeman than a gangster. Wallace is still governed to some extent by the concept of ‘not done’. In No Orchids anything is ‘done’ so long as it leads on to power. All the barriers are down, all the motives are out in the open. Chase is a worse symptom than Wallace, to the extent that all-in wrestling is worse than boxing, or Fascism is worse than capitalist democracy.
ellauri236.html on line 204: In borrowing from William Faulkner's Sanctuary, Chase only took the pl ot; the mental atmosphere of the two books is not similar. Chase really derives from other sources, and this particular bit of borrowing is only symbolic. What it symbolizes is the vulgarization of ideas which is constantly happening, and which probably happens faster in an age of print. Chase has been described as ‘Faulkner for the masses’, but it would be more accurate to describe him as Carlyle for the masses. He is a popular writer — there are many such in America, but they are still rarities in England — who has caught up with what is now fashionable to call ‘realism’, meaning the doctrine that might is right. The growth of ‘realism’ has been the great feature of the intellectual history of our own age. Why this should be so is a compl icated question. The interconnexion between sadism, masochism, success-worship, power-worship, nationalism, and totalitarianism is a huge subject whose edges have barely been scratched, and even to mention it is considered somewhat indelicate. To take merely the first exampl e that comes to mind, I believe no one has ever pointed out the sadistic and masochistic element in Bernard Shaw's work, still less suggested that this probably has some connexion with Shaw's admiration for dictators. Fascism is often loosely equated with sadism, but nearly always by peopl e who see nothing wrong in the most slavish worship of Stalin. The truth is, of course, that the countless English intellectuals who kiss the arse of Stalin are not different from the minority who give their allegiance to Hitler or Mussolini, nor from the efficiency experts who preached ‘punch’, ‘drive’, ‘personality’ and ‘learn to be a Tiger man’ in the nineteen-twenties, nor from that older generation of intellectuals, Carlyle, Creasey and the rest of them, who bowed down before German militarism. All of them are worshipping power and successful cruelty. It is important to notice that the cult of power tends to be mixed up with a love of cruelty and wickedness for their own sakes. A tyrant is all the more admired if he happens to be a bloodstained crook as well, and ‘the end justifies the means’ often becomes, in effect, ‘the means justify themselves provided they are dirty enough’. This idea colours the outlook of all sympathizers with totalitarianism, and accounts, for instance, for the positive delight with which many English intellectuals greeted the Nazi-Soviet pact. It was a step only doubtfully useful to the U.S.S.R., but it was entirely unmoral, and for that reason to be admired; the expl anations of it, which were numerous and self-contradictory, could come afterwards.
ellauri236.html on line 206: Until recently the characteristic adventure stories of the English-speaking peopl es have been stories in which the hero fights against odds. This is true all the way from Robin Hood to Pop-eye the Sailor. Perhaps the basic myth of the Western world is Jack the Giant-killer, but to be brought up to date this should be renamed Jack the Dwarf-killer, and there already exists a considerable literature which teaches, either overtly or impl icitly, that one should side with the big man against the little man. Most of what is now written about foreign policy is simpl y an embroidery on this theme, and for several decades such phrases as ‘Play the game’, ‘Don't hit a man when he's down’ and ‘It's not cricket’ have never failed to draw a snigger from anyone of intellectual pretensions. What is comparatively new is to find the accepted pattern, according to which (a) right is right and wrong is wrong, whoever wins, and (b) weakness must be respected, disappearing from popular literature as well. When I first read D. H. Lawrence's novels, at the age of about twenty, I was puzzled by the fact that there did not seem to be any classification of the characters into ‘good’ and ‘bad’. Lawrence seemed to sympathize with all of them about equally, and this was so unusual as to give me the feeling of having lost my bearings. Today no one would think of looking for heroes and villains in a serious novel, but in lowbrow fiction one still expects to find a sharp distinction between right and wrong and between legality and illegality. The common peopl e, on the whole, are still living in the world of absolute good and evil from which the intellectuals have long since escaped. But the popularity of No Orchids and the American books and magazines to which it is akin shows how rapidly the doctrine of ‘realism’ is gaining ground.
ellauri236.html on line 208: Several peopl e, after reading No Orchids, have remarked to me, ‘It's pure Fascism’. This is a correct description, although the book has not the smallest connexion with politics and very little with social or economic problems. It has merely the same relation to Fascism as, say Trollope's novels have to nineteenth-century capitalism. It is a daydream appropriate to a totalitarian age. In his imagined world of gangsters Chase is presenting, as it were, a distilled version of the modern political scene, in which such things as mass bombing of civilians, the use of hostages, torture to obtain confessions, secret prisons, execution without trial, floggings with rubber truncheons, drownings in cesspools, systematic falsification of records and statistics, treachery, bribery, and quislingism are normal and morally neutral, even admirable when they are done in a large and bold way. The average man is not directly interested in politics, and when he reads, he wants the current struggles of the world to be translated into a simpl e story about individuals. He can take an interest in Slim and Fenner as he could not in the G.P.U. and the Gestapo. Peopl e worship power in the form in which they are able to understand it. A twelve-year-old boy worships Jack Dempsey. An adolescent in a Glasgow slum worships Al Capone. An aspiring pupil at a business college worships Lord Nuffield. A New Statesman reader worships Stalin. There is a difference in intellectual maturity, but none in moral outlook. Thirty years ago the heroes of popular fiction had nothing in common with Mr. Chase's gangsters and detectives, and the idols of the English liberal intelligentsia were also comparatively sympathetic figures. Between Holmes and Fenner on the one hand, and between Abraham Lincoln and Stalin on the other, there is a similar gulf.
ellauri236.html on line 210: One ought not to infer too much from the success of Mr. Chase's books. It is possible that it is an isolated phenomenon, brought about by the mingled boredom and brutality of war. (LOL) But if such books should definitely acclimatize themselves in England (or Nigeria!), instead of being merely a half-understood import from America, there would be good grounds for dismay. In choosing Raffles as a background for No Orchids I deliberately chose a book which by the standards of its time was morally equivocal. Raffles, as I have pointed out, has no real moral code, no religion, certainly no social consciousness. All he has is a set of reflexes the nervous system, as it were, of a gentleman. Give him a sharp tap on this reflex or that (they are called ‘sport’, ‘pal’, ‘woman’, ‘king and country’ and so forth), and you get a predictable reaction. In Mr. Chase's books there are no gentlemen and no taboos. Emancipation is compl ete. Freud and Machiavelli have reached the outer suburbs. Comparing the schoolboy atmosphere of the one book with the cruelty and corruption of the other, one is driven to feel that snobbishness, like hypocrisy, is a check upon behaviour whose value from a social point of view has been underrated.
ellauri236.html on line 284: Heinie tuli peremmälle. Se veti ulos tuolin ja istui alas. Hän oli seurapiiriläpyskän jalkamies joka harjoitti kiristystä samalla. Se noukki aina tiedon murusia ja usein provikasta välitti ryöstövinkkejä Kansasin kaupungin ympäristön rosvokopl ille.
ellauri236.html on line 286: Voit sanoa tuon uudestaan, Heinie sanoi, haistellen keittokinkkua. Olin Jopl inissa viime yönä peittämässä täisiä vihkiäisiä. Melkein paistuin. Kuvittele hääyötä tälläsessä helteessä!
ellauri236.html on line 376: In New York City, a local goon and gang leader named Riley learns that the wealthy socialist Miss Blandish will be wearing an expensive diamond necklace to her birthday celebration. Riley and his gang pl an to steal the necklace and ransom it. The inept criminals manage to kidnap Miss Blandish and her boyfriend, but after the latter is accidentally killed they instead decide to hold Miss Blandish ransom, reasoning that her millionaire father will pay more to get his daughter back safely than the necklace is worth.
ellauri236.html on line 378: The pl an begins to fall apart when a rival mob, led by the sadistic and mentally unbalanced Slim Grisson (actually, by his Ma), finds out about Riley's pl an and kidnaps Miss Blandish from the gang. Mr. Blandish pays the ransom to Slim (no no, to his Ma!), but his daughter is not returned. Slim becomes increasingly obsessed with Miss Blandish and decides to keep her hidden in a secret room inside one of his nightclubs, repeatedly raping her and lashing out at anybody who attempts to wrestle Miss Blandish from his charge.
ellauri236.html on line 386: In 1973, Gene D. Phillips of Loyola University of Chicago remarked on the influence of William Faulkner's 1931 novel Sanctuary, writing that, "It is a matter of record that [No Orchids for Miss Blandish] was heavily indebted to Sanctuary for its pl ot line." Phillips also stated that Slim Grisson, who was identified by Phillips as the main antagonist, was based on Popeye The Sailor Man, a criminal in Faulkner's novel. Onko se sama Kippari Kalle joka heilastelee Olkan kanssa ja hoitaa pikku Hajuhernettä?
ellauri236.html on line 392: No voihan helkutti! Ilmeisesti en jaxanut lukea kyllin pitkälle. Jäi Solakan kiihottavat puuhat Miss Imarteen huoneessa pl äräämättä. Tai sitne sivut oli vaan liimantuneet kiinni. Varmaan ne british servicemenien pehmeäkantiset kappaleet oli niiltä kohin aika tahmautuneita. Näkemämme modernisoitu Phileas Fogg on juonellisesti ja näyttelijätyön osalta suunnilleen saman tasoinen, mutta jäimme siitäkin kaipaamaan oikeita obszöönejä panokohtauxia.
ellauri236.html on line 420: "Slim is tall and thin and he smells of dirt. He stands over me and stalks. I understand what he is trying to do and appl aud it. I pretend to be dead to make it easier for him. I want to scream when he comes, but if I did, he would know I was alive. He goes on for hours over me, mumbling.” Then suddenly she screamed out, “Why doesn't he do it to me?“
ellauri236.html on line 425: Ma’s eyes suddenly snapped with rage. Her face turned purpl e. “Slim wants her,” she said, lowering her voice and glaring at Eddie. “He’s going to have her. You keep out of it! That goes for the rest of you too!” Eddie felt horny for the girl, but he wasn’t going to risk his life for her.
ellauri236.html on line 449: Slim stood at the head of the stairs, listening. He grinned to himself. At last he had shown his power. He had scared them all. From now on, he was going to have his rightful pl ace in the gang. Ma was going to take second pl ace. He looked down the passage at Miss Blandish’s room. It was time he stopped rubbing it on her night after night. He must show her he wasn’t only master of his mother, but master of her too. Dammit, he would stick it right in!
ellauri236.html on line 470: Now this is romantic, don't we know. EAT! and FUCK! eternally at war. Good genes against food and shelter, and the good genes win. Sama juttu myös modernissa Foggissa. Vaikka, huomasitte kai, sammakkomaan lakukeppiä ei päästetty kättelemään punatukan äveriästä isäpappaa. Tämä vaivaannuttava episodi sivuutettiin taidolla. Tollanen kolmikko ei pysy koossa kuin jossain liberaalissa ajatuskupl assa tai 10 leguan syvyydessä valtameren pohjassa. Mixi muuten Passport ei ottanut päästä hattua tullessaan herrasmiesten klubille? Koska siltä puuttuu tapakasvatus!
ellauri236.html on line 482: “She is dead. I have no doubt about that. It would be an impossible thought to think of her still alive and in the hands of such men. No, she’s dead. At least I hope so. If she isn't pl ease make it so. I don't want back any damaged goods.” “Money is no object,” Blandish said. "Money is a subject. Women are objects.“
ellauri236.html on line 485: Captain Charles Brennan, City Police, a fat, red-faced man with blue hard eyes and sandy-colored hair, greying at the templ es, reached across his desk to shake dicks with Fenner. Why do these policemen always have the same look and feel? I guess its natural selection. Chase has an unerring touch of the hackneyed and obvious.
ellauri236.html on line 500: Fenner put his arm around her coaxingly. “I’ll tell you where we’ll go, the Cosmos Club. We’ll combine business with pl easure.”
ellauri236.html on line 504: “Run along, baby, I’ve work to do. I’ll pick you up at eight-thirty at your pl ace,” and turning her, Fenner gave her a slap on her behind, launching her fast to the door.
ellauri236.html on line 514: Over the years, Chase developed a distinct, signature style in his writing that was fast-paced, with little expl anations or details about the surroundings or weather or the unreliable characters. Characters in his novels and short stories would be more coherent than consistent who acted and reacted with unbreakable logic. Punchy sentences, short bursts of dialogue in authentic sounding dictionary slang with pl enty of action were the characteristics of his writing.
ellauri236.html on line 520: Chase's novels were so thick that the reader was compelled to turn the pages in a non-stop effort to reach the end of the book. The final page often produced a totally unexpected pl ot twist. (Ei kuitenkaan tossa lähtöjuhlissa, kurkistin.) His early books contained some violence that matched the era in which they were written. Unfortunately, sex was never expl icit and, though often hinted at, seldom happened. That would invariably leave even his most die-hard fans disappointed. This may be why his books failed to take hold in the American market.
ellauri236.html on line 522: In many of his novels, treacherous women pl ay a significant role. The protagonist falls in love with one and is prepared to kill someone at her behest. Only when he is killed, does he realise that the woman was manipulating him for her own ends. He never got it into her backend well and good, despite all the promises.
ellauri238.html on line 31: Hämynä talsit play:none">Turrnipsi pellossa
ellauri238.html on line 40: Täähän oli kissanpojan Psapfa-coveri? Jep: Catullus 51 is a poem by Roman love poet Gaius Valerius Catullus (c. 84 – c. 54 BC). It is an adaptation of one of Sappho's fragmentary lyric poems, Sappho 31. Catullus repl aces Sappho's beloved with his own beloved Lesbia. Unlike the majority of Catullus' poems, the meter of this poem is the sapphic meter. This meter is more musical, seeing as Sappho mainly sang her poetry.
ellauri238.html on line 46: ploads/2019/08/saffo_godward-U102025288635133KD-U10202545832695xeH-599x340@LaStampa-NAZIONALE.jpg?w=1280" width="40%" />
ellauri238.html on line 90: ploads/2017/03/alcool_de_sorgho_de_pkin3-e1490203837230.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri238.html on line 225: Penan Mitä tapahtuu todella -kirjaa, jonka Tuomas Anhava kokosi sen huoneen lattialla lojuneista zetteleistä, myytiin siihen aikaan uskomattomat 10K kpl , melkein yhtä paljon kuin Aili Konttisen lempparia Totisesta kristillisyydestä . Jälkeenpäin Pena vielä julkesi naureskella kaikelle, entisille puolisoillekin.
ellauri238.html on line 235: Poezia sa aparține patrimoniului cultural național, creația sa recomandându-l drept un autor clasic al literaturii române, un om cu un gust literar desăvârșit și un autor canonic, care nu poate lipsi din manualele școlare nici în ziua de azi. A dus, de asemenea, o prodigioasă activitate de iluminare (culturalizare) a țăranilor, fiind un precursor al mișcării poporaniste și un tehnician desăvârșit al prozodiei, folosea o gamă foarte variată de picioare metrice și de ritmuri, de la cele ale poeziei populare la terza rima. A dat o versiune compl etă a operei lui Dante, Divina comedie. A tradus foarte mult din lirica străină și a adaptat prin localizare la sufletul și mediul țărănesc Eneida și Odiseea (Iliada a fost tradusă de contemporanul său, George Murnu) și a introdus specii ale poeziei orientale, cum ar fi gazelul, în poezia română. Toate aceste calități îl recomandă pentru poziția pe care o ocupă, de autor clasic, dar mai ales simțul echilibrului și faptul că a scos în evidență partea solară, idilică, a sufletului țăranului român.
ellauri238.html on line 279: VIDEO
ellauri238.html on line 318: ploads/2021/06/image-73-246x300.png" width="100%" />
ellauri238.html on line 453: Das Buch (190 Seiten) kostet im Handel 28 Euro doch ist für Stammkunden des Else-Geschäfts zum Sonderpreis von nur 20 Euro pl us Versandkosten zu erwerben!
ellauri238.html on line 559: Kun Puuppa lukee Penalle ääneen Penan Aikaa Prahassa, Pena pillahtaa itkuun vähän väliä: niin kaunista, niin kaunista! Yeats ja Kipl ing oli samanlaisia. Kotimaassa Pena tahtoo olla kaikkien tuntema naama, ei ole elossa ellei lue sitä lööpeistä. Ulkomailla se sai lomaa mannekeerauxesta ja porvarin säikytyxestä.
ellauri238.html on line 648: We express our deep respect to Karpov as a chess pl ayer. We express our deep contempt for him as a Russian and an accompl ice of Putin. The mentioned match, as you probably know, was also an ideological battle (considering the status of Korchnoi and considering how opportunistic Karpov was both under the Soviet regime and under the current Russian regime). It's a pity that Korchnoi couldn't win and Fischer refused to pl ay at all. Korchnoi jumped to our side and Fischer was an exempl ary Jew.
ellauri238.html on line 650: Born in Leningrad, Soviet Union (USSR), Korchnoi defected to the Netherlands in 1976, and resided in Switzerland from 1978, becoming a Swiss citizen. Korchnoi pl ayed four matches, three of which were official, against GM Anatoly Karpov. In 1974, Korchnoi lost the Candidates Tournament final to Karpov. Karpov was declared World Champion in 1975 when GM Bobby Fischer declined to defend his title. Korchnoi then won two consecutive Candidates cycles to qualify for World Chess Championship matches with Karpov in 1978 and 1981 but lost both.
ellauri238.html on line 696: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/9/94/Maiju_lassilan_hautaus_1918.jpg" />
ellauri238.html on line 730: "My cup runneth over" is a quotation from the Hebrew Bible (Psalms:23:5) and means "I have more than enough for my needs", though interpretations and usage vary. This phrase, in Hebrew כּוֹסִי רְוָיָה (kōsî rəwāyāh), is translated in the traditionally used King James Version as my cup runneth over. Newer translations of the phrase include "my cup overflows" and "my cup is compl etely full".
ellauri238.html on line 734: VIDEO
ellauri238.html on line 765: During the nazi occupation, he worked as a feeder of lice in the Rudolf Weigl Institute. From January until July 1952, he was a salaried blood donor. The loss of Lviw to the reds was an important theme in his later works. Herbert was attached to his new homeland tynkä-Poland, but at the same time was deepl y disgusted by all effects (political, economical, cultural etc.) of the commies.
ellauri238.html on line 865: Alter stressed it was important to remember that Amichai is not simpl y an Auden or a William Carlos Williams writing from right to left. Far from it! Yehuda Amichai was an Israeli poet and author, one of the first to write in colloquial Hebrew in modern times. Amichai was awarded the 1957 Shlonsky Prize, the 1969 Brenner Prize, 1976 Bialik Prize, and 1982 Israel Prize. He also won international poetry prizes, and was nominated several times for the Nobel Prize in Literature.
ellauri240.html on line 34: Kaupunki nimeltä play:none">Misogyniaa
ellauri240.html on line 36: ploads/2017/12/a-4.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri240.html on line 52: ploads/2013/05/joycebrothers.jpg?quality=85&strip=all" height="250px" />
ellauri240.html on line 59: Joyce Diane Brothers (1927-2013) oli amerikkalainen psykologi, televisiopersoona, neuvoja, kolumnisti ja kirjailija. Hän tuli tunnetuksi ensimmäisen kerran vuonna 1955 voittamalla pääpalkinnon amerikkalaisessa peliohjelmassa The $64,000 Question. Pikku-Aune oli aivan ilmiselvä juutalainen, os. Bauer, siskokin nai jonkun Goldsmithin. In 1949, she married Milton Brothers, who later went on to become an internist. 40 years later in 1989, Brothers lost her husband to bladder cancer. Following the death of her husband, Brothers fell into a state of depression for a year and contempl ated suicide (at 62); however, she used her own self-help work to achieve inner peace and happiness. Brothers and her husband had a daughter, four grandchildren and two great-grandchildren.
ellauri240.html on line 63: As her fame grew there was an increase in disapproval among psychologists and psychiatrists (an all-male panel) . They questioned both the validity of her psychological claims and her authority in providing psychological advice. A growing number of male psychologists began to believe the advice she provided to her audience was unethical insofar as she did not hold any clinical degree and she was giving advice for free, not to patients who were paying customers. Mr. Stevens and Mr. Gardener, the authors of “Women and Psychology,” stated that “traditional psychologists smile subtly when her name is mentioned and they often compl ain that she actually does more damage to the Brotherhood than good. Besides, her eyes are way too close together.“
ellauri240.html on line 86: At once poignant, funny, and troubling, Charles Simmons’s Wrinkles is a dissection of an ordinary male existence made extraordinary through reflection—a brilliant celebration of the not-so-simpl e act of being swallowed alive.
ellauri240.html on line 103: Nancy steps outside into a bright and foggy morning where all her friends and her mother are still alive. Nancy gets into Glen's convertible to go to school when the green and red striped top suddenly comes down and locks them in as the car drives uncontrollably down the street. Three girls in white dresses pl aying jump rope are heard chanting Krueger's nursery rhyme as Marge is grabbed by Krueger through the front door window. What a sad compromise! All just so they can keep on making sequels to the film. WTF. I can't stand film directors.
ellauri240.html on line 107: Many Hmong refugees settled in the United States after the Vietnam War. Beginning in December 1975, the first Hmong refugees arrived in the U.S., mainly from refugee camps in Thailand; however, only 3,466 were granted asylum at that time under the Indochina Migration and Refugee Assistance Act of 1975. In May 1976, another 11,000 were allowed to enter the United States, and by 1978 some 30,000 Hmong peopl e had immigrated. This first wave was made up predominantly of men directly associated with General Vang Pao's secret army. The Hmong allied with the French against the Communists during the whole Indochina War and with the Americans during the whole Vietnam War, hoping to resist communist Viêt Minh control. So here was the thanx for their efforts.
ellauri240.html on line 111: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/72/Hmong-Ban_Phaya_Phipak62.JPG" width="100%"/>
ellauri240.html on line 117: Vang Pao, mercenary soldier, born 8 December 1929; died 6 January 2011. Vang Pao, the Laotian general who marshalled a CIA mercenary army to fight a "secret war" against communist insurgents in the remote mountains of Laos in the 1960s, has died aged 81. Although Vang Pao's supporters portrayed him as a father figure uniting all his peopl e, the Hmong (an ethnic minority in Laos), on the side of the US against the communist world, his critics regarded him as a charismatic but ruthless opium warlord, who made arrogant and misleading claims to speak on behalf of all Hmong. Far from uniting the Hmong, they say, he divided them. Some historians argue that he allowed his "secret army" to be used as cannon-fodder, pl ayed as pawns on a CIA geopolitical chessboard.
ellauri240.html on line 118: Air America pilots have since admitted that their pl anes not only transported rice, bullets and weapons, but also sacks of opium grown by the Hmong villages. Smuggled narcotics became a routine cargo transported from Laos and delivered into the corrupt arms of a clique of South Vietnamese generals in Saigon. Vang Pao even set up a heroin laboratory at the secret US CIA base at Long Cheng. The trade helped to fund Vang Pao's army, with the compl icity of senior CIA operatives.
ellauri240.html on line 119: Dazzled by the whirl of US airpower bringing 24-hour food and military suppl ies to his men in the remote mountains near the Plain of Jars, Vang Pao came to believe in the Chao Fa legend of an independent Hmong state.
ellauri240.html on line 124: Vang Pao has been widely portrayed by his Hmong supporters and the US media as an American war hero and venerated leader of the Hmong peopl e. The former CIA chief William Colby once called him "the biggest hero of the Vietnam war". He came very close to having a park in Madison City, Wisconsin, named after him in 2002. But McCoy objected to the honouring of a man who had ordered the summary executions of prisoners and soldiers who crossed him, and accused Vang Pao of war crimes and heroin-trafficking. Five years later, Vang Pao's name was removed from a new school in Madison after opponents said it should not bear the name of a man with such a blood-stained history.
ellauri240.html on line 128: In 2007, he was arrested and charged with other Hmong leaders in federal court with conspiracy in a pl ot to kill communist officials in his native country. Federal prosecutors alleged the Lao liberation movement known as Neo Hom raised millions of dollars to recruit a mercenary force and conspired to obtain weapons.
ellauri240.html on line 134: Fred was the president and chairman of Andersen Corp., America's largest manufacturer of windows and patio doors, from 1914 until he retired in 1972. He served the company for more than 75 years. Katherine also devoted much of her time to the company, serving on the board of directors for 50 years. In 1959, the coupl e created the Andersen Foundation, now called the Fred C. and Katherine B. Andersen Foundation.
ellauri240.html on line 136: ploads/chorus_asset/file/24097129/Andersens_cropped.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri240.html on line 143: That in turn would reflect the growing confidence of the traditionally secretive Peopl e's Liberation Army, which is pushing for greater influence and bigger budgets.
ellauri240.html on line 178: ploads/2018/12/el-joven-manos-de-tijerra1-672x283.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri240.html on line 196: place0603.jpg" />
ellauri240.html on line 207: After graduation George was offered a position as a principal at a school in Gilmanton, New Hampshire. By now the family had three children, all dependent upon his meager salary. It was while she was living in Gilmanton that Julian Messner, a New York publisher, agreed to publish Peyton Place. The book was a best seller by the fall of 1956, and Metalious became a wealthy woman overnight. Eventually, 20 million copies were sold in hardcover, along with another 12 million Dell paperbacks. Metalious became famous as the housewife who wrote a bestseller; she was referred to as "Pandora in Blue Jeans," the simpl e small-town woman who opened the box of sins.
ellauri240.html on line 209: Peyton Place is the story of a small New England town that, beneath its calm exterior, is filled with scandal and dark secrets. The novel contains sex, suicide, abortion, murder and a subsequent trial, and rape. The citizens of Gilmanton were outraged, certain that Grace Metalious was describing real peopl e in the book and sure that she had brought shame and unwarranted notoriety to their town. After Peyton Place was published, the whole image of the small town in America was forever changed. From then on the very phrase "Peyton Place" was used to describe a town that is rife with deep secrets and rampant sex beneath the veneer of picturesque calm.
ellauri240.html on line 211: Peyton Place was banned in many communities; in fact, the local public library refused to purchase a copy of the book and did not have one until 1976, when newswoman Barbara Walters donated one to them. In Gilmanton there were threats of libel suits against Grace Metalious. Ministers and political leaders all over the country condemned the novel, claiming that it would corrupt the morals of young peopl e who read it. The novel was banned altogether in Canada and several other countries.
ellauri240.html on line 217: After she died, George wrote his own book called The Girl from "Peyton Place." The book offers a husband's view of how Metalious was expl oited after the publication of the book, but also of how she was responsible for bringing unhappiness to herself and to others. A whole series of other "Peyton Place" books were produced after Grace Metalious's death, with titles like The Evils of Peyton Place and Temptations of Peyton Place. None of these were a commercial success.
ellauri240.html on line 221: Although Peyton Place is still well known for its depiction of a certain kind of small town society with many hidden secrets, few peopl e read the book any longer. Few peopl e read any books any longer. Scandalous in its time, it no longer has the same force of shock that it did when it was published. Thanx to the pill.
ellauri240.html on line 239: ploads/sites/6/2021/02/NINTCHDBPICT000584597537.jpg?w=6702" width="50%" />
ellauri240.html on line 240: Allison and Allen spl it in 1992. Let me expl ain. Seli seli.
ellauri240.html on line 242: In the four-part US series by HBO, Dylan Farrow recalled the moment that Woody Allen allegedly "touched her private parts" when she was seven. Dylan, now aged 35, has previously written that Allen one day led her to an attic at their house when she was seven years old. She alleged: "He told me to lay on my stomach and pl ay with my brother’s electric train set. Then he sexually assaulted me."
ellauri240.html on line 244: ploads/sites/6/2021/02/NINTCHDBPICT000002363648.jpg?w=670" width="50%" />
ellauri240.html on line 251: ploads/sites/6/2021/02/NINTCHDBPICT000637806479.jpg?h=200" />
ellauri240.html on line 252: ploads/sites/6/2021/02/NINTCHDBPICT000068442175.jpg?h=200" />
ellauri240.html on line 276: The Shakespearean pl ay ending thus contains several narrative inconsistencies uncharacteristic of Shakespeare, an unusually unsatisfying dénouement, drastically different styles in different pl aces and an unusually large number of long lines that do not scan.
ellauri240.html on line 278: Linguists have all discovered apparent confirmation of the theory that Middleton wrote much of the pl ay. It contains numerous words, phrases, and punctuation choices that are characteristic of his work but rare in Shakespeare.
ellauri240.html on line 280: The pl ay's abrasively harsh humour and its depiction of social relationships that involve a denial of personal relationships are Middletonian traits. "Timon of Athens is all the more interesting because the text articulates a dialogue between two dramatists of a very different temper."
ellauri240.html on line 282: Thomas Middleton (baptised 18 April 1580 – July 1627; also spelt Midleton) was an English Jacobean pl aywright and poet. He, with John Fletcher and Ben Jonson, was among the most successful and prolific of pl aywrights at work in the Jacobean period, and among the few to gain equal success in comedy and tragedy.
ellauri240.html on line 284: Middleton's pl ays are marked by often amusingly presented cynicism about the human race. True heroes are a rarity: almost every character is selfish, greedy and self-absorbed. Middleton's work has long been praised by literary critics, among them Algernon Charles Swinburne and T. S. Eliot. The latter thought Middleton was second only to Shakespeare.
ellauri240.html on line 286: Some Frank refers to Timon of Athens as "a poor relation of the major tragedies." This is the majority view, but the pl ay has many scholarly defenders as well. Nevertheless, and perhaps unsurprisingly due to its subject matter, it has not proven to be among Shakespeare's popular works.
ellauri240.html on line 288: Mutta vittu mitä genreä se on? Kriitikot ovat ymmällään. Soellner (1979) argues that the pl ay is equal parts tragedy and satire, but that neither term can adequately be used as an adjective, for it is first and foremost a tragedy, and it does not satirise tragedy; rather, it satirises its subjects in the manner of Juvenalian satire while simultaneously being a tragedy.
ellauri240.html on line 290: Herman Melville considered Timon to be among the most profound of Shakespeare's pl ays. Melville used the term "Timonism" about an artist's contemptuous rejection of both his audience and mankind in general.
ellauri240.html on line 292: Marx agreed with Timon about money: "It is the common whore, the common procurer of peopl e and nations."
ellauri240.html on line 435: Surullista, tosi surullista. Ilta-Pulu on todella ankeuttava läpyskä. Panee kaipaamaan Neuvostoliiton aikoja, jolloin paskaa lapioi sentään vain Pravda ja Izvestija, pl us Serapionin veljexet. Mitä vähemmän valtameedioita sen parempi. Ainoa hyvä valtameedia on kuollut valtameedia.
ellauri240.html on line 489: “Cynicism is a disease that robs peopl e of the gift of life.” – Rainn Wilson
ellauri240.html on line 500: Founded in 2008 by Rainn Wilson et al., SoulPancake was created to encourage open-heart dialogue about what it means to be human. Throughout the years, we created content that expl ores the ways we all seek connection, hope, truth, identity, and purpose. (What a revolting bunch of buzzwords!)
ellauri240.html on line 502: Our decade-pl us of award-winning content spans digital, television, branded, and live engagements, with hits such as Street Stunts for Oprah´s Super Soul Sunday, Kid President, My Last Days, Science of Happiness, Tell My Story, and more. In 2016 SoulPancake joined the Participant family, with like-minded visions of making the world a better pl ace through thoughtful, inspiring content. As one unified voice under the Participant brand, we are building a global community using storytelling as the vehicle to reimagine better futures of peace and prosperity for all, and cultivating pathways for our audiences to create real world impact. And to sell maximum number of MeUndies on the side.
ellauri240.html on line 542: ploads/2022/09/Anna-LenaLauren-31-2-2048x1365.jpg" height="150px" />
ellauri241.html on line 34: Leimiä play:none">Misokeittoa
ellauri241.html on line 36: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/8a/The_knight_and_the_mermaid.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri241.html on line 49: It is only after Fanny receives a valentine from Brown that Keats passionately confronts them and asks if they are lovers. Brown sent the valentine in jest, but warns Keats that Fanny is a mere flirt pl aying a game. Fanny is hurt by Brown's accusations and Keats' lack of faith in her; she ends their lessons and leaves. The Dilkes move to Westminster in the spring, leaving the Brawne family their half of the house and six months rent. Fanny and Keats then resume their interaction and fall deepl y (ca. 6 inches) in love. The relationship comes to an abrupt end when Brown departs with Keats for his summer holiday, where Keats may earn some money. Fanny is heartbroken, though she is comforted by Keats' love letters. When the men return in the autumn, Fanny's mother voices her concern that Fanny's attachment to the poet will hinder her from being courted. Fanny and Keats secretly become engaged.
ellauri241.html on line 51: Keats contracts tuberculosis the following winter. He spends several weeks recovering until spring. His friends collect funds so that he may spend the following winter in Italy, where the climate is warmer. After Brown impregnates a maid and is unable to accompany him, Keats finds accommodation in London for the summer, and is later taken in by the Brawne family following an attack of his illness. When his book sells with moderate success, Fanny's mother gives him her blessing to marry Fanny once he returns from Italy. The night before he leaves, he and Fanny say their tearful goodbyes in privacy. Keats dies in Italy the following February of compl ications from his illness, as his brother Tom did. Bugger it.
ellauri241.html on line 118: And love, and pl easure, and the ruddy strife ja rakkaus ja nautinto, ja sydänten ja huulten punertava riita!
ellauri241.html on line 127: Vermilion-spotted, golden, green, and blue; Vermilion-täpl äinen, kultainen, vihreä ja sininen;
ellauri241.html on line 139: She had a woman´s mouth with all its pearls compl ete: Hänellä oli naisen suu kaikkine hörteineen:
ellauri241.html on line 144: Came, as through bubbling honey, for Love´s sake, tulivat kuin kupl ivan hunajan läpi, Rakkauden tähden,
ellauri241.html on line 149: I had a spl endid dream of thee last night: näin upeaa unta sinusta viime yönä:
ellauri241.html on line 156: I dreamt I saw thee, robed in purpl e flakes, Näin unta, et näin sinut kaurahiutaleisiin pukeutuneena,
ellauri241.html on line 160: Too gentle Hermes, hast thou found the maid?" Liian lempeä Hermes, oletko löytänyt pl ikan?"
ellauri241.html on line 167: Where she doth breathe!" "Bright pl anet, thou hast said," mistä reiästä hän hengittää!" "Kirkas pl aneetta, sinä sanoit:"
ellauri241.html on line 175: About these thornless wilds; her pl easant days Näissä piikittömissä erämaissa; miellyttävät päivänsä
ellauri241.html on line 179: She pl ucks the fruit unseen, she bathes unseen: Hän poimii hedelmiä näkymättömästi, hän kylpee näkymättömänä:
ellauri241.html on line 200: Give me my woman´s form, and pl ace me where he is. Anna minulle naisen muotoni ja aseta minut sinne, missä hän on.
ellauri241.html on line 208: Their pl easures in a long immortal dream. Heidän ilonsa pitkässä kuolemattomassa unessa.
ellauri241.html on line 236: A deep volcanian yellow took the pl ace Syvä tulivuorenkeltainen tuli hänen lievemmän
ellauri241.html on line 275: To unperpl ex bliss from its neighbour pain; Erottamaan autuuden naapurireijän kivusta;
ellauri241.html on line 312: To sacrifice to Jove, whose templ e there uhratakseen Jovelle, jonka temppeli siellä
ellauri241.html on line 321: In the calmed twilight of Platonic shades. Enemmän tai vähemmän pl atonisten sävyjen hämärässä.
ellauri241.html on line 370: Where I may all my many senses pl ease, joissa voin miellyttää monia aistejani,
ellauri241.html on line 374: The amorous promise of her lone compl ain, rakkauslupauksen hänen yksinäisestä valituksestaan,
ellauri241.html on line 403: At Venus´ templ e porch, ´mid baskets heaped Venuksen temppelin kuistilla, keskikoriin kasaten
ellauri241.html on line 413: To unperpl exed delight and pl easure known. hämmentyneeseen iloon ja nautintoon.
ellauri241.html on line 414: Let the mad poets say whate´er they pl ease Anna hullujen runoilijoiden sanoa mitä lystäävät
ellauri241.html on line 423: More pl easantly by pl aying woman´s part, miellyttävämmin näyttelemällä naisen roolia,
ellauri241.html on line 426: Lycius to all made eloquent repl y, Lykius vastasi kaikkeen kaunopuheisesti,
ellauri241.html on line 431: Made, by a spell, the tripl e league decrease sen tekemällä hypnoottisella eleellä kolminkertainen legua
ellauri241.html on line 439: And all her populous streets and templ es lewd, Ja kaikki sen kansoitetut kadut ja rivot temppelit,
ellauri241.html on line 448: Of some arch'd templ e door, or dusky colonnade. jonkin kaarevan temppelin oven tai hämärän pylväskäytävän varjossa.
ellauri241.html on line 462: Yourself from his quick eyes?" Lycius repl ied, itsesi hänen nopeilta silmiltään?" Lycius vastasi:
ellauri241.html on line 476: Breathed from the hinges, as the ampl e span henki saranoista, kun leveiden ovien laaja jänneväli
ellauri241.html on line 477: Of the wide doors disclosed a pl ace unknown paljasti paikan tuntemattoman jonkin aikaa kenelle tahansa,
ellauri241.html on line 501: Love, jealous grown of so compl ete a pair, rakkaus, kateellisexi kasvanut niin täydellisestä parista,
ellauri241.html on line 521: That purpl e-lined palace of sweet sin, Tohon purppuralla vuorattuun suloisen synnin palaziin,
ellauri241.html on line 538: "My silver pl anet, both of eve and morn! "Hopea pl aneettani, sekä aattona että aamuna!
ellauri241.html on line 539: Why will you pl ead yourself so sad forlorn, Miksi vedät itseäsi käteen niin surullisen ikävänä,
ellauri241.html on line 590: With any pl easure on me, do not bid (alas pikkuveitikka!) sulle mieluisa, älä käske
ellauri241.html on line 592: Lycius, perpl ex'd at words so blind and blank, Lycius, hämmentyneenä sanoista niin sokeista ja tyhjistä,
ellauri241.html on line 617: Of palm and pl antain, met from either side, palmua ja jauhobanaania, kohosi molemmilta puolilta,
ellauri241.html on line 619: Two palms and then two pl antains, and so on, Kaksi kämmentä ja sitten kaksi jauhobanaania ja niin edelleen,
ellauri241.html on line 621: All down the aisled pl ace; and beneath all Kaikki alas käytävä- ja permantopaikoilta; ja kaiken alla
ellauri241.html on line 628: The fretted spl endour of each nook and niche. jokaisen nurkan ja markkinaraon täyteen ärsyyntynyttä loistoa.
ellauri241.html on line 629: Between the tree-stems, marbled pl ain at first, Puiden varsien väliin, aluksi marmoroitujen,
ellauri241.html on line 635: Compl ete and ready for the revels rude, Se oli täydellinen ja valmis töykeisiin nautintoihin,
ellauri241.html on line 645: Remembered it from childhood all compl ete sen lapsuudesta asti täydellisenä
ellauri241.html on line 650: And with calm-pl anted steps walk'd in austere; ja tyynein askelin käveli sisään koruttomasti;
ellauri241.html on line 657: His young discipl e. "´Tis no common rule, nuoren opetuslapsensa. "Ei ole yleinen sääntö,
ellauri241.html on line 665: Turning into sweet milk the sophist's spl een. pehmentäen maitomaisesti happamen sophistin pernaa.
ellauri241.html on line 687: Had felt the cold full sponge to pl easure press'd, oli tuntenut kylmän täyden sienen mielihyväksi puristettuna
ellauri241.html on line 691: In white robes, and themselves in order pl aced he kaikki siirtyivät juhlijat valkoisissa kaapuissa, ja tärkeysjärjestyksessä aseteltuin
ellauri241.html on line 702: The space, the spl endour of the draperies, juhlatilat, verhojen loisto, ihan
ellauri241.html on line 710: Flush'd were their cheeks, and bright eyes double bright: Heidän poskensa olivat punaiset, ja kirkkaat silmät tupl a kirkkaat:
ellauri241.html on line 715: Of every guest; that each, as he did pl ease, että kukin, kuten mieluiten halusi, voisi sovittaa kulmakarvoihinsa,
ellauri241.html on line 726: War on his templ es. Do not all charms fly sotaa hänen ohimoillaan. Eivätkö kaikki loizut lennä vittuun
ellauri241.html on line 737: By her glad Lycius sitting, in chief pl ace, Hänen vierellään iloinen Lycius istuu päällikköpaikalla,
ellauri241.html on line 743: And pl edge him. The bald-head philosopher Pyytääxeen panolupaa häneltä. Kaljupää filosofi
ellauri241.html on line 759: "Lamia!" he cried and no soft-toned repl y. "Läimiä!" hän huusi, eikä hiän vastannut pehmeästi.
ellauri241.html on line 763: By faint degrees, voice, lute, and pl easure ceased; Heikoin asteib ääni, luuttu ja mielihyvä lakkasivat;
ellauri241.html on line 771: Wander'd on fair-spaced templ es; no soft bloom Vaeltele reilun etäisyyden päässä olevissa ohimoissa; ei pehmeää leväkukinta
ellauri241.html on line 822: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e6/Lamiamyth.jpg" />
ellauri241.html on line 836: In some melodious pl ot Jossain melodisessa juonessa
ellauri241.html on line 846: With beaded bubbles winking at the brim, Helmikupl at vilkkuvat reunassa,
ellauri241.html on line 847: And purpl e-stained mouth; Ja purppuranvärinen suu;
ellauri241.html on line 865: Though the dull brain perpl exes and retards: Vaikka tylsät aivot hämmentävät ja hidastavat:
ellauri241.html on line 867: And hapl y the Queen-Moon is on her throne, Ja onneksi Kuukuppi on valtaistuimellaan,
ellauri241.html on line 910: Adieu! adieu! thy pl aintive anthem fades Hyvästi! hyvästi! valitettavasti hymnisi haalistuu
ellauri241.html on line 946: Kiizin Endymion on haimaa äärimmilleen rasittava sokeripl äjäys, kuin vanhuxen 70-vuotispäivien kerrostäytekakku. Se on liian paxu nautittavaxi kokonaan saati suolistettavaxi, sixi alla vaan joitain pelleimpiä kohtia.
ellauri241.html on line 953: For simpl e sheep.
ellauri241.html on line 984: And, for those simpl e times, his garments were
ellauri241.html on line 1028: i.e. contempl ating with opiates,
ellauri241.html on line 1033: pl us Peonia, his sweet sister: of all those,
ellauri241.html on line 1034: His friends, the dearest pl aymate
ellauri241.html on line 1057: Hapl y, thou hast seen her moon,
ellauri241.html on line 1061: Whence that compl eted form of all compl eteness?
ellauri241.html on line 1062: Compl etely spherical! You wouldn't believe!
ellauri241.html on line 1064: And compl etely bald! Porcellain! No trace of hair!
ellauri241.html on line 1133: And anxiously began to pl ait and twist it,
ellauri241.html on line 1140: And fish were dimpl ing, snickering like hell.
ellauri241.html on line 1188: That he can give venereal pl easure though lying senseless in the tubes.
ellauri241.html on line 1204: He had begun a pl aining of his woe.
ellauri241.html on line 1213: Upl ifted drowsily, and nervy tails
ellauri241.html on line 1218: The bird takes him to some other pl ace.
ellauri241.html on line 1245: To pl uck thee from me? Your dad?
ellauri241.html on line 1252: By the most soft compl etion of thy face,
ellauri241.html on line 1278: Upl ift thee; nor for very shame can own
ellauri241.html on line 1298: In the very deeps of pl easure, is it life?”
ellauri241.html on line 1312: Drunken from pl easure's nippl e; and his love
ellauri241.html on line 1327: "And now,” thought he, “How long must I pl ay jeopardy
ellauri241.html on line 1354: In empurpl ed vests and crowns, and turbans.
ellauri241.html on line 1355: With unladen breasts, save of blown self-appl ause, they proudly mount
ellauri241.html on line 1391: Old rusted anchors, helmets, breast-pl ates large
ellauri241.html on line 1426: Went arching up, and like two magic pl oughs
ellauri241.html on line 1457: This sucker will take my pl ace.
ellauri241.html on line 1492: Like cum of yesterday of his youthful pl easures:
ellauri241.html on line 1495: of dolphins who were his pl aymates; shapes unseen
ellauri241.html on line 1531: But live and wither, crippl e and still breathe
ellauri241.html on line 1561: —“Look here!” the old-timer repl ied,
ellauri241.html on line 1563: And resuscitate Scylla, pl us others if you wish."
ellauri241.html on line 1590: An it weren'a spoiler, hapl y I might say
ellauri241.html on line 1591: Some pl easant words:—but Love will have her day.
ellauri241.html on line 1635: Endymion has an intense love for the goddess of his dreams but he professes his love to the Indian Maiden. He believes that his declaration of love seals his death and he asks for the goddess to sing a song to him so he can die peacefully. Within her song is the story of how she ended up wandering the forest alone. She says that she joined the god Bacchus and his cult of followers and traveled across countries. She witnessed peopl e of multipl e nations fall to Bacchus and decided to flee on her own. The Maiden ended up in the woods where she and Endymion have met.
ellauri241.html on line 1639: The Maiden reappears to the shepherd-prince as he returns to earth. Endymion is overcome with relief and joy and says that he has wasted too long searching for nothing but a dream and wants to start a life with the Maiden. She tells him that they cannot be together because he is forbidden to her. They wander through the forest and are quiet and somber until Endymion sees his sister Peona in the distance. They rush together and embrace. Peona impl ores Endymion to "weep not so" and "sigh no more" for the Indian Maiden can be his queen of Latmos. Endymion responds that "a hermit young, [he will] live in mossy cave" but Peona can visit him regularly. The resigned shepherd-prince leaves behind a confused Peona and Maiden and visits the altar of Diana to "bid adieu / To her for the last time." Peona and the Indian Maiden arrive. Endymion watches in stunned disbelief as the Indian Maiden transforms into his beloved Diana. It is revealed that Cynthia, Diana, and the Indian Maiden are the same woman. Actually Peona too! For all practical purposes, all women are the same: one hole up front and two more in the pants. Endymion swoons and after "three swiftest kisses" they vanish together leaving Peona who walks home in wonderment.
ellauri242.html on line 34: BEFOREIGNERS play:none">Taistoturrukoita
ellauri242.html on line 128: Mi templ i!
ellauri242.html on line 157: ploads/2019/08/skh82xwb-medium-784x523.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri242.html on line 158: ploads/2020/03/GettyImages-1205262929.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri242.html on line 217: Komsomol oli pioneereista seuraava neuvostonuorille tarkoitettu kertši. Komsomolin perustajia olivat 16-vuotias Lazar Satskin ja 19-vuotias Oskar Ryvkin. Tiedot perustajista kuitenkin sittemmin salattiin, koska heidät muutettiin käteisexi Stalinin vainoissa kerta he olivat juutalaisia. Saman kohtalon kokivat Komsomolin alkuvaiheen johtajat Nikolai Chapl in, Jefim Tseitlin ja Pjotr Smorodin, vaikkeivät olleetkaan (no Jefim oli).
ellauri242.html on line 245: Aleksandra Mihailovna Kollontai (ven. Алекса́ндра Миха́йловна Коллонта́й, o.s. Domontovitš, ven. Домонто́вич; 31. maaliskuuta (J: 19. maaliskuuta) 1872 Pietari – 9. maaliskuuta 1952 Moskova) oli venäläinen marxilainen kirjailija, feministi ja dipl omaatti. Hänestä tuli maailman ensimmäinen naispuolinen dipl omaattiedustaja vuonna 1923, kun hänet nimitettiin Neuvostoliiton edustajaksi Osloon. Kollontai oli Neuvostoliiton täysivaltainen edustaja (vuodesta 1943 suurlähettiläs) Tukholmassa vuosina 1930–1945, missä asemassa hän toimi välittäjänä Suomen ja Neuvostoliiton rauhantunnusteluissa vuosina 1940 ja 1944.
ellauri242.html on line 256: Stalinin saatua vallan hän (kuka? Leninkö?) nimitti Kollontain ulkomaille dipl omaatiksi – Kollontai oli uranuurtaja: ensimmäinen nainen suurlähettiläänä koko maailmassa. Hänet nimitettiin ensin kauppa- ja dipl omaattiedustajaksi Norjaan (1923–1926), sitten Meksikoon (1926–1927), josta palasi Norjaan 1927–1930). Vuonna 1930 hän sai siirron Tukholmaan, jossa toimi vuoteen 1945 asti. Hän oli myös mukana Neuvostoliiton lähettämässä edustajistossa YK:n perustamisessa. Ulkomailla hänellä ei ollut vaikutusvaltaa Neuvostoliiton sisäisiin asioihin. Hän toimi dipl omaattisena välittäjänä maissa, joiden kautta Neuvostoliitto pystyi hankkimaan tarvitsemiaan kriittisiä tuotteita, esimerkiksi toisen maailmansodan aikana ruozalaisia SKF:n kuulalaakereita, joiden päävientikohde oli Saksa. Ulkomaantyönsä ansiosta hän säilyi yhtenä harvoista vanhoista bolševikkijohtajista sivussa Stalinin puhdistuksista ja teloituksista. Vuonna 1945 Kollontai sairastui ja palasi Neuvostoliittoon. Hän kuoli vuonna 1952. Silloin isä aurinkoinenkin oli jo kalkkiviivoilla.
ellauri242.html on line 265: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b7/Kollontaj.jpg/250px-Kollontaj.jpg" />
ellauri243.html on line 34: Onnettomat paskiaiset play:none">Paskiaiset vormuissa
ellauri243.html on line 52: Herlinin sanomien tiedeuskontoliite Tiede (ei enää 2000) ylittää entisetkin perseilyennätyxensä julkaisemalla jonkun 1992 syntyneen talous"tutkija" juipin haastattelun jossa kaveri ihan kylmän rauhallisesti sanoo ettei tuloeroille ole mitään perusteluja mutta ei hän kuitenkaan vastusta tuloeroja. Voi helvetti. Heitin pl ärän kierrätyxeen samantien. Tällästäkö myydään "tieteen" nimellä? Tällänen pseudotiede on tämän päivän uskonto, ihan sama onko se oikein vaiko vasein kunhan se edistää Herliniä suosivia tuloeroja.
ellauri243.html on line 65: Kun taas nokintajärjestystä ja kilpailua peukuttavat näkemyxet ovat saaneet samassa meemimyllyssä joteskin pl usmerkkisen sivumaun:
ellauri243.html on line 105: ploads/sites/3/2021/12/kyle_AVS.png?resize=1536,864" width="40%" />
ellauri243.html on line 135: Nevada is home to a number of federal reservations and colonies. The major tribes are the Washouts, Northern Paiute, Southern Paiute, and Western Shoeshines. Many have been hit disproportionately hard by the coronavirus and may have pre-existing health conditions or live in remote areas with limited access to medical care. In the Reno-Sparks Indian Colony, a clever color-coded card system was set up for peopl e to signal from their windows for help with a health issue, food shortage, or other problem.
ellauri243.html on line 137: Compared with other U.S. races, American Indians have a life expectancy that is shorter than five years. The suicide rate among American Indian youth is 2.5 times higher than among youth in the rest of the country. American Indians are 2.5 times more likely to experience violent crimes than the national average, and more than four out of five American Indian women will experience parking meter violation in their lifetimes. Holy shit, these issues can be seen as symptoms of several larger issues, including access to social services, educational opportunities, nutritional food, and health care, and just pl ain old laziness and stupidity. Property rights pose more significant problems, insomuch as residents who don’t have deeds to the land on which they live struggle to build credit, which throws a significant barrier in front of upward mobility. Meanwhile, tribal lands are tough sells for franchises and other commercial developers that would bring jobs to reservations, as these companies are often resistant to negotiating contract terms under tribal law. So it's really all their own fault, them not pl aying along with good old free enterprise and private property!
ellauri243.html on line 146: The little community of Battle Mountain and its mysterious underground base of hobbits went almost compl etely unnoticed by the rest of the world...
ellauri243.html on line 147: until the American Holocaust, when the United States was attacked by waves of Russian bombers launching hypersonic nuclear-tipped missiles. Almost the entire fleet of American long-range bombers and more than half of America's intercontinental-ballistic-missile arsenal was wiped out in a matter of hours. But Battle Mountain's little fleet of high-tech bombers, led by Patrick McLanahan, survived and formed the spearhead of the American counterattack that destroyed most of Russia's ground-launched intercontinental nuclear missiles and restored a tenuous sort of parity in nuclear forces between the two nations. On the pl us side, there are now less than half so many hungry mouths left to feed on the entire ball of fire. Except this, everything goes on as before, business as usual.
ellauri243.html on line 149: Battle Mountain emerged from the horrific tragedy of the American Holocaust to become the center of American air-breathing strategic combat operations. All of America's surviving heavy bombers, intelligence-gathering pl anes, and airborne command posts wre relocated to Battle Mountain, and a fleet of long-range unmanned combat aircraft began to grow there. The base even a staging area for America's fleet of manned and unmanned spacepl anes-aircraft that could take off became and land like conventional aircraft but boost themselves into low Earth orbit.
ellauri243.html on line 154: Newly elected president Kenneth Phoenix, Arizona, politically exhausted from a bruising and divisive election that saw yet another president being chosen in effect by the U.S. Supreme Court, ordered a series of massive tax cuts as well as cuts in all government services. Such government cuts had not been seen since the Thomas Thorn administration: entire cabinet-level departments, such as education, commerce, transportation, energy, and veterans affairs, were consolidated with other departments or closed outright; all entitlement-program outlays were cut in half or defunded compl etely; American military units and even entire bases around the world disappeared virtually overnight. Despite howls of protest from both the political left and right, Congress had no choice but to agree to the severe right-centrist austerity measures.
ellauri243.html on line 159: Thomas Torquemada Thorn (born Thomas A. Lockyear, II; 2 August 1964) is an American musician. Born in Madison, Wisconsin, he is best known as co-founder of, and lead vocalist for, the industrial metal band The Electric Hellfire Club. Joint Air Base Battle Mountain was not spared. Every aircraft at the once-bustling base was in "hangar queen" status - available only as spare parts for cars. Most pl anes pl aced in "flyable storage" were not even mothballed, but just hoisted up on clothes hangers.
ellauri243.html on line 163: ploads/2018/09/millennial-slang-e1536590844960.jpg?resize=768,512" />
ellauri243.html on line 168: There are so many slang words for penis, maybe because it’s the human organ that fascinates us most. We’ve compiled all slang ways peopl e say “penis” from around the world. While some of these penile terms might sound familiar, others will blow your mind.
ellauri243.html on line 175: The medical community calls it “fellatio,” but the rest of us have our own phrases for performing oral sex on a man. The below is a comprehensive list of slang alternatives to “blowjob.” Some of these phrases are politically incorrect and other are compl etely ridiculous. Regardless, they exist in the collective lexicon. Here they are!
ellauri243.html on line 177: 1. Addressing the court 2. BJ 3. Bagpiping 4. Basket lunch 5. Beej 6. Blowie 7. Blowing the love whistle 8. Bobbing for appl es 9. Bone-lipping 10. Buccal onanism 11. Brentwood hello 12. Charming the snake 13. Climbing the corporate ladder 14. Cock-gobbling 15. Copping a doodle 16. Courting the gay vote 17. Drinking a slurpee 18. Dropping on it 19. Earning your keep 20. Essin’ the dee 21. Face-frosting 22. Fellatio 23. Fluting 24. French abortion 25. Gator mouth 26. Getting a facial 27. Getting a lewinsky 28. Getting a throat culture 29. Getting to the cream filling 30. Giving cone 31. Giving face 32. Giving head 33. Gobbling pork 34. Going down 35. Gumming the root 36. Punching 37. Giving Big Jim and the twins a bath 38. Giving brain 39. Giving head 40. Gum-rooting 41. Gumming the green bean 42. Head job 43. Honkin’ bobo 44. Huffing bone 45. Hummer 46. Interrogating the prisoner 47. Kneeling at the altar 48. Knob job 49. Larking 50. Laying some lip 51. Licking the lollipop 52. Making mouth music 53. Making the blind see 54. Meeting with Mr. One-Eye 55. Mouth-fucking 56. Mouth-holstering the nightstick 57. Mouth-milking 58. Mouth-to-junk resuscitation 59. Opening wide for Dr. Chunky 60. Oral sodomy 61. Peeling the banana 62. Penilingus 63. Piston job 64. Playing pan’s pipes 65. Playing the pink oboe 66. Playing the skin flute 67. Pole-smoking 68. Polishing the trailer hitch 69. Pricknicking 70. Protein milkshake 71. Receiving holy communion 72. Respecting your superiors 73. Sampl ing the sausage 74. Scooby-snacking 75. Secretarial duties 76. Singing to the choir 77. Skull-buggery 78. Skull-fucking 79. Slobbin’ the knob 80. Smiling at Mr. Winky 81. Smoking the pink pipe 82. Smoking pole 83. Southern France 84. Speaking into the bonophone 85. Speaking low genitals 86. Spit-shining a baseball bat 87. Spraying the tonsils 88. Sucking off 89. Sucky-ducky 90. Suck-starting the Harley 91. Swallowing the baloney pony 92. Sword-wwallowing 93. Taking one’s temp with a meat thermometer 94. Talking into the mic 95. Telling it to the judge 96. Waxing the carrot 97. Worshiping at the altar 98. Wringing it dry 99. Yaffling the yogurt cannon 100. Zipper dinner
ellauri243.html on line 181: There are so many slang words for vagina, maybe because it’s the human organ that fascinates us most. We’ve compiled all slang ways peopl e say “vagina” from around the world. While some of these penile terms might sound familiar, others will blow your mind.
ellauri243.html on line 192: Here is a fun fact about basketball pl ayer LeBron James: His name starts with the prefix "Le," which is French for "the." It's true!
ellauri243.html on line 196: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d1/THE_HOPE_OF_ALL_THE_WORLD_-_NARA_-_515613.jpg/1599px-THE_HOPE_OF_ALL_THE_WORLD_-_NARA_-_515613.jpg?20111010030348" width="100%" />
ellauri243.html on line 200: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/af/DC_Capitol_Storming_IMG_7942.jpg/1600px-DC_Capitol_Storming_IMG_7942.jpg?20210109030603" width="100%" />
ellauri243.html on line 202: It is often used in the United States as a symbol for right-libertarianism, classical liberalism, and small government; for distrust or defiance against authorities and government; and occasionally co-opted for right-wing populism or far-right ideology. In the mid-1970s, the New Left Peopl e's Bicentennial Commission used the Gadsden Flag symbolism on buttons and literature.
ellauri243.html on line 204: ploads/2012/05/science.jpg?resize=150" />
ellauri243.html on line 206: Some libertarian circles use a version of the flag with the snake and motto pl aced over a rainbow flag.
ellauri243.html on line 208: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/40/Christopher_Gadsden.jpg" />
ellauri243.html on line 211: In addition to its prior history as an American symbol, the rattlesnake was seen at the time in Gadsden's birthpl ace of Charleston, South Carolina as a "noble and useful" animal that gave warning before it attacked.
ellauri243.html on line 213: Parodies and pastiches of the Gadsden flag exist; one common design repl aces the "Don't tread on me" motto with "No Step on Snek", sometimes paired with a crudely drawn snek.
ellauri243.html on line 215: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fc/No_Step_On_Snek_%28Gadsden_Flag%29.svg/440px-No_Step_On_Snek_%28Gadsden_Flag%29.svg.png" />
ellauri243.html on line 250: Marie Limp in 2004, and the coupl e has three children together. Brad Pitt
ellauri243.html on line 282: Читать ещё! UPDATED: Check out the celebrity coupl es who broke up in 2021!
ellauri243.html on line 285: the 2010s. Celebrity Coupl es Who Broke Up In 2020. Jules Burke. Updated
ellauri243.html on line 286: September 23, 202139 items. UPDATED: Check out the celebrity coupl es who
ellauri243.html on line 289: exactly the most pl easant list, but if you’ve ever wondered, “What
ellauri243.html on line 294: travelled through the industry. But the coupl e seemed to be very much in
ellauri243.html on line 297: travelled through the industry. But the coupl e seemed to be very much in
ellauri243.html on line 298: love. However, after 13 long years of marriage, the coupl e opted for a
ellauri243.html on line 302: sweethearts. Скрыть! Меню 17 broken-up celebrity coupl es that we still miss
ellauri243.html on line 303: yahoo.com › news › 17-broken-celebrity When iconic celebrity coupl es break
ellauri243.html on line 306: half of another iconic celebrity coupl e - the rest of us might need some
ellauri243.html on line 307: more... Читать ещё... When iconic celebrity coupl es break up, it seems like
ellauri243.html on line 310: iconic celebrity coupl e - the rest of us might need some more time. From
ellauri243.html on line 314: how much we missed them as a coupl e. Brad Pitt and Jennifer Aniston attend
ellauri243.html on line 316: Картинки! Меню вчера Меню Celebrity Coupl es Who Broke Up and Got Back
ellauri243.html on line 317: Together [PHOTOS] peopl e.com › celebrity › celeb-broke "Right before we got
ellauri243.html on line 330: Ups In 2022 So Far buzzfeed.com › celebrity-who-broke 33 Celebrity Coupl es
ellauri243.html on line 333: relationships we lost so far in 2022 Читать ещё <3<3 Celebrity Coupl es That
ellauri243.html on line 419: Publishers. Скрыть Меню! Käynti pl astiikkakirugin veitsen alla? Putinin
ellauri243.html on line 442: miljoonaa rupl aa Putinin rakastajatar.. 2022 | ВКонтакте m.vk.com ›
ellauri243.html on line 444: miljoonaa rupl aa Putinin rakastajatar Alina Kabaevan
ellauri243.html on line 447: siirsivät 218,2 miljoonaa rupl aa Putinin rakastajatar Alina Kabaevan
ellauri243.html on line 484: In his personal life, Brown is a member of CAP. He is one of the pilots who regularly fly outpatients to get the attention that he craves. This is all done on a volunteer basis (but the kerosene is on the house), so he spends a lot of time flying across the country. In his free time, he enjoys flying in his own personal pl ane and he is a soccer referee for youth games.
ellauri243.html on line 486: It is clear that Dale Brown never expected to be as successful as he has been. This is clear by his killing off of some characters, only to be resurrected in subsequent novels. He originally only intended to write 3 novels for his publisher. Now, 24 books later, he is an accompl ished author and his fans are eagerly awaiting his next novel teeming with revenants.
ellauri243.html on line 488: In April 2004, Brown pl eaded guilty to charges of tax fraud. He was charged with creating companies in the West Indies for the purposes of receiving tax deductions from fictitious expenses. The fictitious expenses amounted to more than $440,000, which Brown claimed on his 1998 income tax filing. He used the tax deductions to remodel his retirement home in Incline Village, Nevada.
ellauri243.html on line 497: He enjoys flying his pl ane, a Grumman Gulfstream II. Like Patrick and his son Hunter, he is a mission pilot in the Civil Air Patrol. On the ground, he enjoys tennis, motorcycling, skiing, scuba diving, and ice hockey. He does enjoy other things like scuba diving and tennis, but cherishes spending time with his wife, Diane and his son Hunter, in their Lake Tahoe house. They all live together in Nevada.
ellauri243.html on line 499: His first novel was Flight of the Old Dog and it launched his career. The pl ot of the book surrounds the mission of Gen. Bradley Elliot. He is testing a unique old bomber and the mission occurs to him to destroy a soviet weapon on site in Soviet Union before it is depl oyed. The aircraft is called Old Dog and it has to get the team to safety.
ellauri243.html on line 504: Some peopl e call this series the Paul McLanahan series and others call them the Dreamland series, based on the base in which the books are set. He has been writing this series for over 25 years now. This series is not to be confused with his other series, which is officially titled the Dreamland series and is a collaboration with another author who shall remain nameless.
ellauri243.html on line 508: He hopes to carry on writing books and maybe one will catch a director’s attention. He is working on writing some screenpl ays based on his books in the hope that he can get a Hollywood agent in the future.
ellauri243.html on line 510: Dale Brown is still at the forefront of publishing novels today. He most recent novel, Tiger’s Claw, was released in August 2013. The pl ot of this book surround President Phoenix, Arizona, who has again slashed the military budget just when China begins to test it’s new domestic missile.
ellauri243.html on line 512: America calls upon retired Patrick McLanahan to save the day with the good old bomber pl anes. It is a classic case of America vs. China, with the hope that World War 3 can be prevented. This has not been very successful so far. Some critics are going so far as to call him one of the saddest military adventure writers in America.
ellauri243.html on line 518: Dale Brown is teaching Detroit the art of self-defense. Emhpasising on this, the Brown coupl e focus on disarming techniques, especially how to get hold of a gun and twist. "We show you how to take it so you can remove the weapon," Dale Brown went on, "all you're doing is increasing someone's potential for survivability in a worst case scenario."
ellauri243.html on line 521: I purchased my first book of your quite by mistake thinking it was Dan Brown. After having read it I was hooked and have purchased all of them and now both of my sons are reading them. Looking forward to many more, pl ease.
ellauri243.html on line 538: FBI bird on pitempi kuin Pat ja sen avonainen pusero korostaa nätisti sen tissejä. Se puristaa Pättiä (kädestä) hirmu kovasti. Her job was to bat her eyes and shake her ass at suspects, but sadly, old Pat had lost his sense of touch. But beefy Brad is casting glances at her cleavage. Brad's eyes follow Cassandra's fan as she waddles back across the hangar. He has his seed bags hitched up and his pink torpedo all armed up for rapid depl oyment. Musta leski Cassandra valmistautuu nielemään sen hook, line and sinker. "Dreamer" January Nelsonia lainataxemme (yllä ): get ready for suck-starting the Harley, swallowing the baloney pony, taking her temp with a meat thermometer.
ellauri243.html on line 542: Tämmönen Bob Stearns kuoli hiljattain. Robert "Bob" H. Stearns, Columbia, SC * December 9, 1936 + January 5, 2023. Tämä Bob kyllä piti lentokoneista. He had a lifelong love affair with airpl anes and flying, owned a half dozen aircraft and enjoyed meeting up with his flying buddies, meticulously restoring vintage aircraft and going to fly-ins. His health eventually clipped his wings, and after that he turned his attention to volunteering at Riverbanks Zoo and nurturing a latent talent for painting, which was discovered after Bob and Marge moved to Stilled Hopes.
ellauri243.html on line 546: VIDEO
ellauri243.html on line 550: Bob Stearns, CEO of Powerful Potential. BOB STEARNS is one of only 95 peopl e in history to lead an organization to win the prestigious Malcolm Baldrige Award. He was the Leader and Architect of Pittsburgh based Medrad’s 2003 journey to win the prestigious award. Medrad won the Baldrige award again in 2010. The Baldrige Award is presented annually by the President of the United States to organizations that excel in seven categories, including results. As Chief Human Resources Officer of CoManage, Bob led that company to be named the Best Place to Work in Pa.” He has also received the American Society for Training and Development Award for Excellence. Bob has served as a Director on the Boards of National Church Solutions, The Orchards at Foxcrest, the Pa. Society of Association Executives, the Pa. Association of Non Profit Organizations and a Woman owned business through Powerlink and Seton Hill University. Bob has owned and been the CEO of PowerfulPotential since 1985.
ellauri243.html on line 552: Bob’s book which is titled” Perhaps a Man Can Change the Stars” is the basis for today’s program. He is a sought after Inspirational Speaker, having spoken in eight countries. He just launched a Nationwide Speaking Tour to share the messages from his book with as many peopl e as he can.
ellauri243.html on line 554: Bob´s book is about Perpetual Potential. Inside these pages, you will discover three invaluable lessons that will propel you closer to your true potential. The lessons will serve you well on either of two different, but parallel roads you may travel: The roads towards triumph or tragedy, as well as the roads in between. In 2003 the author, Bob Stearns was on top of the world. He led his company to win the most prestigious business award in the country, the Malcolm Baldrige award. Just five short years later, tragedy struck. Bob´s oldest son Eric was killed while on a study trip abroad in Athens, Greece. Eric was 21 years old at the time and was a junior at Penn State University. Although Eric lost his precious life in Greece, he found something sprawled under the pillars of the Acropolis that many peopl e search for their entire lifetimes. He found inner peace in the knowledge that he could truly be anything he wanted to be, he could do anything he wanted to with his life. In his book "Perhaps a Man Can Change the Stars - Eric's Pursuit of Perpetual Potential", Bob shares with you three life lessons that allowed Eric to understand his true potential. Those same lessons helped Bob and his family deal with Eric´s death. The same lessons had enabled Bob to lead his company to triumph five years earlier. A key take away from the book is that no matter what stage of life you find yourself, you have the potential to expl ore. You have the potential to utilize and grow the talents and aspirations that you currently have. You have the potential to rekindle old talents that lie dormant, and to allow new talents to blossom. This is true regardless of age, circumstances, and what other peopl e may be telling us. So read, expl ore and think deepl y about how you can appl y the three lessons that Bob learned from Eric. Decide for yourself how you can best use them. Indeed, our Potential is Perpetual!
ellauri243.html on line 558: 1) Focus on what you do have, not on what you don´t have; 2) Tackle the toughest challenges and never quit; and 3) Change the Stars! Eric passed away during this trip, but he has inspired thousands of peopl e through this outstanding Film.
ellauri243.html on line 610: David Joseph Mahoney Jr. (May 17, 1923 – May 1, 2000) was an American business leader, philanthropist and author. He joined a passionate community of peopl e who love what you love.
ellauri243.html on line 616: Mahoney was married to model Barbara "Barbie" Ann Moore, and the coupl e had two children. He later married model Hildegarde "Hillie" Merrill, the former Mrs. Arthur C. Merrill, who had two sons from her previous marriage.
ellauri243.html on line 623: The 1 in 60 Rule: How Remarkably Successful Peopl e Stay on Track to Accompl ish Their Biggest Goals.
ellauri243.html on line 624: Because where success is concerned, a great pl an is essential--but so is making smart course corrections. That´s why pilots are taught the 1 in 60 rule, which states that after 60 miles a one degree error in heading will result in straying off course by one mile. Never mind the math, it´s quite compl icated. The point is, the farther you go, the more off course you end up.
ellauri243.html on line 626: We all have dreams. The peopl e who accompl ish their dreams don´t just dream, though. They create processes. They build systems. They establish routines that keep them on track and ensure they reach their ultimate goal. Oddly enough, they (unlike pilots) don´t obsess over their goals. They obsess over their processes, because greatness results partly from inspiration but mostly from consistent, relentless effort.
ellauri243.html on line 627: And they stay on course because they constantly evaluate their progress, and make smart corrections to their process. Want to turn a dream into a reality? Follow this simpl e process.
ellauri243.html on line 632: "Lose 10 pounds in 30 days" is a specific, objective, and most critically, measurable goal. You know exactly what you want to accompl ish, which means you can create a process designed to get you there. You can create a solid diet pl an. You can create an effective workout pl an.
ellauri243.html on line 635: Or say you want to grow your business. "Increase revenue" sounds great but is too vague. "Land five new customers this month" is specific, objective, and measurable. You know exactly what you want to accompl ish, which means you can create a process designed to get you there.
ellauri243.html on line 640: One of the biggest reasons peopl e give up on huge goals is the distance between here, where you are today, and there, where you someday hope to be. If you did only $10,000 in sales last month and your target is $1 million in sales per month, the distance between here and there seems insurmountable.
ellauri243.html on line 642: That´s one reason most incredibly successful peopl e set a goal, and then focus all their attention on the creating and following a process designed to achieve that goal. The goal still exists, but their real focus is on what they do today. And making sure that do it again tomorrow. Because consistency matters: What you do every day is who you are. Like take a shit. And who you will become. A piece of shit.
ellauri243.html on line 645: Health care providers are taught to check medications three times before delivering to patients. Not because the process itself is compl ex. But because they are visual learners. The same is true for you; the consequence of "error," in terms of time, effort, money, etc., when you don´t achieve a goal can be considerable. (And depressing: No matter how often you hear "fail fast, fail often," failure still pretty much sucks. It causes stress.)
ellauri243.html on line 651: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/be/Welcome_to_Pahrump%2C_Nevada_%289365852795%29.jpg/1280px-Welcome_to_Pahrump%2C_Nevada_%289365852795%29.jpg" width="100%"/>
ellauri243.html on line 670: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/48/Rothbard_%2770s.jpg" height="200" />
ellauri243.html on line 682: Mises vastusti sosialismia ja suunnitelmataloutta sen vähäisimmissäkin muodoissa koko elämänsä ajan, mutta hänen luottamuksensa vapaaseen markkinatalouteen lujittui vasta hänen nähtyään bolševikkien valtaantulon Venäjällä ja kansallissosialismin nousun Saksassa ja Itävallassa. Mises pyrki osoittamaan, että kun valtio lisää rahamäärää katteettomasti, seurauksena on suhdannevaihteluita, syntyy talouskupl a, jota seuraa lama.
ellauri243.html on line 696: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b3/U.S._Marshals_knock_and_announce.jpg/500px-U.S._Marshals_knock_and_announce.jpg" />
ellauri243.html on line 714: Benjamin Disraeli , 1st Earl of Beaconsfield, KG, PC, DL, JP, FRS, SOB (21 December 1804 – 19 April 1881) was a British statesman and Conservative politician who twice served as Prime Minister of the United Kingdom. He pl ayed a central role in the creation of the modern Conservative Party, defining its policies and its broad outreach. He is the only British prime minister to have been of Jewish origin.
ellauri243.html on line 716: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0c/Benjamin_Disraeli_by_Cornelius_Jabez_Hughes%2C_1878.jpg/440px-Benjamin_Disraeli_by_Cornelius_Jabez_Hughes%2C_1878.jpg" />
ellauri243.html on line 722: Disraeli arranged for the British to purchase a major interest in the Suez Canal Company in Egypt. In 1878, faced with Russian victories against the Ottomans, he worked at the Congress of Berlin to obtain peace in the Balkans at terms favourable to Britain and unfavourable to Russia, its longstanding enemy. This dipl omatic victory over Russia established Disraeli as one of Europe´s leading statesmen.
ellauri243.html on line 726: Disraeli wrote novels throughout his career, beginning in 1826, and published his last compl eted novel, Endymion, shortly before he died at the age of 76. Endymion tuli mainituxi albumissa 127 , sehän oli se Keazin 50 sheidiä.
ellauri243.html on line 732: Endymion is Disraeli in his youth except in the story he is a true-blood British aristocrat. Zenobia, a queen of fashion, is based on his Lady Blessington with a combination of some other great lady. She was Benjamin Disraeli´s first great patroness, who opened the avenue of his wonderful career. Zenobia later retires to the background to give pl ace to Lady Montfort. She is a combination of Lady Blessington and Mrs. Wyndham Lewis (the latter Disraeli married) so we have in Lady Montfort at once the patroness and the wife. It would be interesting to know if the rabbis got to cut Benjy´s prepuce before the falling-out with the synagogue? Maybe that is what the fight was all about?
ellauri243.html on line 738: Pat ja Brad on lomalla MacLanahanien kotikylässä, jota roomalaiset eivät ole koskaan vallanneet. Kolumbaariossa viihdytään pitkä tovi koskettelemassa Wendyn markkeria. Lopulta Pat ihan pussasi Wendyn markkeria. Sama oli siinä taiwanilaisessa leffassa, sun muuta tms, jossa esi-isät oli pienissä laatikoissa seinällä. Apinoita tungexii pl aneetalla niin paljon jo ettei ne mahdu maahan rojolleen.
ellauri243.html on line 745: Ja taas tää "shot heard round the world", joka kuten muistetaan oli vaan lääläälää päällehälinää jostain typerästä kunnarista pesäpallomatsissa, jottei kukaan huomaisi pl aneetan ympärillä orbitoivaa Laika koiraa.
ellauri243.html on line 762: 2. The other James Thomson, in full James Alexander Thomson, (born Dec. 20, 1958, Chicago, Ill., U.S.), is an American biologist who was among the first to isolate human embryonic stem cells. Thomson extracted stem cells from human embryos. However, this confronted him with a moral dilemma, as such an extraction is fatal to the embryo. After consulting with several bioethicists at the university, Thomson decided that continued research was ethical as long as the embryos, "created" by coupl es who "no longer wanted them" in order to "have children", would otherwise be "destroyed anyway." I just love medicinal ethics! Kunnon personismia. Montako neekeriä saa keilata pelastaaxeen yhden valkoisen joka työntää lastenvaunuja.
ellauri244.html on line 34: KLICHEITÄ play:none">Klicheitä, klicheitä
ellauri244.html on line 36: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/a7/Mandelbrot_Creation_Animation.gif" width="100%" />
ellauri244.html on line 129: Vittuilussa kiteytyy ihmisyyden syvin olemus. Anja Kaurasesta kirjailijana tulee mieleen epäonnistunut pakaraimpl antti. Miten te olette noin pieniä ja laihoja? Ripakinttuja? Osaatteko edes keittää perunoita? Oppivat ne perunoita syömään ainakin: ripakintut kannattavat nyt melkoisia reppuja.
ellauri244.html on line 131: ploads/2021/11/IMG_8601-589x589.jpeg" width="30%"/>
ellauri244.html on line 150: Kauraprinsessan takautuvat kannanotot ovat ällistyttävän tätimäisiä. Vaikka Anja oli izekin perusrotinkaisia, meritokraattinen säätytietoisuus oli tapissa. "Aina eivät kirjallisten punkkarien ja kadun peruspogoajien näkemykset menneet aivan sulavasti yksiin. Meidän väitoskirjojen ja romaanien parissa häärineiden saattoi joskus olla hiukan vaikea ymmärtää nipin napin tarkkailuluokalta selvinneen rock-lyyrikon pelkistä kirosanoista koostuvia kontribuutioita, ja päinvastoin." Ja tää kohta on suoraan naistenlehdestä: pl aapl aapl aa, "hymyilin" "miehelle" (ohraprinssi). Oven avaa Taisto Tammen mummo, hymyilevä rouva Hagert.
ellauri244.html on line 169: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/8a/Dr_Samuel_Butler.jpg" />
ellauri244.html on line 180: There were shortcomings in the welfare of pupils. Fights between boys were said to average seventy a week and were regarded by Dr Butler "with a blind eye", comfort for boarders was minimal, and compl aints about food were continuous, on one occasion leading to a riot. His initials "S.B." over the gateway to the house he built himself next to the school were said to be a sign for "stale bread, sour beer, salt butter, and stinking beef sold by Samuel Butler". He tried to suppress games at Shrewsbury, considering football (pre-FA) as "only fit for butcher boys" and "more fit for farmboys and labourers than for young gentlemen".
ellauri244.html on line 193: Keith Butler exposed! Bishop Butler and his wife live at the moment in a $1.3 million home in Troy, Michigan, for which they paid cash. In fact, over the last coupl e decades he has owned some 20 properties, almost all of them paid for in cash. They own several homes at the moment. Like other Word of Faith ministers like Robert Tilton, Butler preaches the "prosperity gospel", constantly browbeating their followers to "sow the seed of prosperty" by giving money to the church, which will supposedly be returned to them a hundred fold. They preach that godliness leads to wealth, thus stigmatizing the poor - if you aren't rich, you obviously just don't have enough faith or aren't a good enough Christian. This is pretty much a sure sign that you're dealing with a huckster.
ellauri244.html on line 195: Word of Faith is home to many such frauds, from Kenneth Copeland to Kenneth Hagin to Frederick Price to Benny Hinn. Even by mainstream Christian standards, their theology is bizarre. They preach, for exampl e, that God is powerless to act in the world except what Christians allow him to do by invoking his name in prayer. They also practice faith healing and teach that sickness is a sign of a weak faith (this despite the fact that lots of Word of Faith pastors and their wives have come down with cancer, heart disease, and so forth).
ellauri244.html on line 257: VIDEO
ellauri244.html on line 261: Jotain kokousrutiinia pl ease, sanoi E. Saarinen perunaleivoxen takaa. Eski kirjoittaa de Sadesta ja punkista. Hyi hittolainen, sado-masosarjakuvia. Yököttäviä retapeppuja. Punapää oli vanha Nudika. Harrin kultakalat kultakalamaljassa olivat Usko ja Toivo. Niinpä tietysti. Kolmas olisi sitten luottamus, mutta naaraita ei ollut. Harrilla on kirjoitusjumi, sen äiti hymyilee kuin Taisto Tammen mummi, vanha rouva Hagert. Ajatella, mitään hampuuseja ja rahvasta ei enää ole olemassakaan, ihasteli mummi. Luulet vaan. Niitä on vaan entistä enemmän. Annoit minulle tärisevän dildon jossa luki: Nöyryys & intohimo. Sen nimi oli Pukari. Vittu mitä tuubaa. Sori siitä, paljas sori.
ellauri244.html on line 269: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/2/20/Ilmatar_ja_sotka.jpg/800px-Ilmatar_ja_sotka.jpg" />
ellauri244.html on line 289: Tuomari Nurmion Vielä yxi opetus oli Punainen pl aneetta-älppärillä joka ilmestyi 1982. Jos Pupu ja Lammas ei ehtineet sitä esittää duuona niin niiden styylaus oli ohi jo syxyllä 1981? Hetkinen, Abiturientti tuli 1980, kauramorsiamen Sonja O (eli Anja Koo) ajoi siitä oikealta ohize 1981. Leffakässärin mukaan siihen päättyi koko romanssi, Harri oli räntämummolle tosi kade. Juu eihän rakkaudesta tule mitään kun veijarit on samalla alalla ja vitun kilpailuhenkisiä. Nopeat syövät hitaat eivät. Kateuteen ei saa sortua, toisille julkisuutta tulee enemmän, toisille vähemmän. Ennen pitkää kaikki pogot halusivat esiintyä ja tienata omilla nimillään.
ellauri244.html on line 304: Aimé Césaire dans son Discours sur le colonialisme critique violamment les positions de Caillois : « J'allais oublier la haine, le mensonge, la suffisance. J'allais oublier Roger Caillois ». Césaire voit dans sa défense de la « supériorité dans tous les domaines de l'Occident » le signe que « jamais l'Occident, dans le temps même où il se gargarise le pl us du mot, n'a été pl us éloigné de pouvoir assumer les exigences d'un humanisme vrai, de pouvoir vivre l'humanisme vrai – l'humanisme à la mesure du monde ».
ellauri244.html on line 308: Sur le pl an des recherches sociologiques, Roger Caillois s'est d'abord fait connaître par un essai d'anthropologie et de sociologie intitulé L'Homme et le Sacré dans lequel il développe une théorie de la fête.
ellauri244.html on line 425: Tired of keeping them hidden inside or only having them come out in the bedroom, they’re all here in the form of some wickedly hot stories. Single-minded alpha hero, sinfully taboo relationships, and wildly over-the-top scenarios. If you love it extra dirty, extra hot, and extra naughty, this is the pl ace for you! (Just don’t tell the other PTA members you saw her here…)
ellauri244.html on line 427: Hayley Faye is a brilliant author with more than two dozen releases including 17 full books spanning multipl e hit series along with stand alone stories! She proudly boasts a Goodreads author rating of 4.5/5 averaged from over 130 unique ratings! Follow On Twitter Love FayeWorlds? Tell your friends! AUTHOR BIO
ellauri244.html on line 437: I'm Faye Bird , author of My Second Life and What I Couldn't Tell You . My latest book is My Secret Lies With You. If you came here to find out more about me, and my books, then you are in the right pl ace. Welcome! Patron of Reading If you are a student, parent or teacher at Elthorne Park High School then pl ease do head to my Patron of Reading page.
ellauri244.html on line 439: Faye Madden 's novels are sweet and wholesome, and through her richly crafted characters she expl ores all the heartache, pain, yet ultimately joyous happiness love brings, however that journey may unfold. Many of her novels expl ore this through the prism of a second chance romance, whilst others focus on love lost and found, or in unrequited love.
ellauri244.html on line 441: Hi, I'm Faye Bryant ! I help peopl e who have endured trauma–whether of their own making, such as addiction and poor choices, or pushed upon them through abuse–recognize they have worth and purpose, determine their God-designed purpose, then live confidently, with focus toward that purpose to live the life God designed them for.
ellauri244.html on line 453: About the author: Faye Toogood is a British artist working in a diverse range of discipl ines, from sculpture to furniture and fashion. Toogood's works have been acquired for the permanent collections of institutions worldwide, and she has exhibited internationally. She is represented by Friedman Benda in New York.
ellauri244.html on line 469: Poliisit haluaa ottaa kiinni murhaajia ja panna niitä vankilaan, koska vanhalla tit for tat taktiikalla tulee rumihia enemmän: hampaasta saatiin tässäkin maxaa 2 hammasta. Mutta ottaen huomioon että apinoiden pl aneetalla hälisee jo 8 giga-apinaa, saattaisi olla sittenkin viisaampi palata Hammurapin pelikirjaan.
ellauri244.html on line 484: Oli ollut tuskallista olla ilman Juliennea mutta oikeesti ei Faye siitä piitannut vaan Jackista. Ylvan täydelliset huulet ja suipot rinnat. Miten Jack työntyi hänen sisäänsä, hoki Ylvan nimeä ja sai orgasmin. Voi apinoiden pl aneetta. Julienne on täys statisti, mikä on hyvä kerta siitä tulee viipaleita. Barbie prinsessa juliennepaloina.
ellauri244.html on line 563: No olipa turhanpöiväistä löpinää. Älkää LÖPISKO! olisi Omppu huutanut. In 2014 the book was reissued as Jonathan Livingston Seagull: The Compl ete Edition, which added a 17-page fourth part to the story. Bach reported that he was inspired to finish the fourth part of the novella by a near-death experience which had occurred in relation to a near-fatal pl ane crash in August 2012. What a pity.
ellauri244.html on line 569: "I'm sorry if I startled you," the stranger said in a voice as clear and friendly as the wind. "I had you in sight all the time. Just pl aying...I wouldn't have hit you."
ellauri244.html on line 593: Here in my opinion is the only imaginative prose-writer of the slightest value who has appeared among the English-speaking races for some years past. Even if that is objected to as an overstatement (there is me, after all), it will probably be admitted that Miller is a writer out of the ordinary, worth more than a single glance; and after all, he is a compl etely negative, unconstructive, amoral writer, a mere Jonah, a passive acceptor of evil, a sort of Whitman among the corpses. Paizi Whatman oli peräreikämiehiä.
ellauri244.html on line 620: After his move to Ocampo Drive, he held dinner parties for the artistic and literary figures of the time. His cook and "caretaker" was a young artist's model named Twinka Thiebaud, 54 years his junior, who later wrote a book about his evening "chats." In relation to reaching 80 years of age, Miller expl ains:
ellauri244.html on line 622: If at eighty you're not a crippl e or an invalid, if you have your health, if you still enjoy a good walk, a good meal (with all the trimmings), if you can sleep with hairy elves without first taking a pill, if birds and flowers, mountains and sea still inspire you, you are a most fortunate individual and you should get down between her knees morning and night and thank the good Lord for your stayin' and keepin' it up power.
ellauri244.html on line 626: Miller died of "circulatory compl ications" at his home in Pacific Palisades, Los Angeles, on June 7, 1980, at the age of 88. Siitä tuli lopultakin vain 2-jalkainen. Ei päässyt enää polvilleen kiittelemään elämää, jolta se sai paljon. Mikä kulkee ensin 4 jalalla, sitten 2:lla ja lopuxi 3:lla? Ei ainakaan Henry.
ellauri244.html on line 628: ple.com/profiles/images/anais-nin-6.jpg" height="150px" />
ellauri244.html on line 629: ploads/2016/01/dfe017a1c7710bae1c58918992f99243.jpg?w=1200&ssl=1" height="150px" />
ellauri244.html on line 630: ploads/2016/01/akg463988.jpg?w=1200&ssl=1" height="150px" />
ellauri245.html on line 40: CASH BY CANS play:none">Tölkeittäin natomatoja
ellauri245.html on line 75: Med raska steg gick Mijailović till rulltrappan som ledde ned till gatupl anet och sprang nedför den. I rulltrappan släppte eller tappade han kniven. Ett vittne tog hand om kniven och med hjälp av en expedit blev den inslagen i silkespapper. Mijailović lämnade NK via utgången mot Regeringsgatan och fortsatte uppför denna gata. I en papperskorg slängde han slidan till kniven och gick in i Salénhuset. Där slängde han den marinblå kepsen i en papperskorg innan han gick till en frisersalong där han bad att få bli klippt. När frisören förklarade att det inte fanns någon ledig tid lämnade han salongen.
ellauri245.html on line 79: Den kriminaltekniska undersökningen av den marinblå kepsen som hade hittats i Salénhuset visade att på kepsen fanns 150 små mockafibrer från den jacka som Anna Lindh burit. Kepsen kom alltså från brottspl atsen.
ellauri245.html on line 83: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/b7/Lindh_killer_image1.jpg"/>
ellauri245.html on line 94: Han nekade till att vara skyldig ända fram till den 6 januari 2004, då han erkände för sin advokat. Mijailović berättade att han den 10 september hade mått dåligt och inte sovit ordentligt på flera dygn. Han hade åkt in till centrala Stockholm. Han hörde röster som talade till honom och när han pl ötsligt fick se Anna Lindh gick han till attack.
ellauri245.html on line 128: VIDEO
ellauri245.html on line 157: On the other hand, from my mostly male fart-loving audience, I received many questions about the use of the torture device Leopold’s Appl e in particular. For exampl e, whether it really exists. Is it available from Amazon?
ellauri245.html on line 159: And another question started coming up: How do you come up with these things? Meaning: What kind of sick, perverted mind could come up with such ideas? I tried to look within myself, to ask if the violence in the book was really appropriately calibrated for the purpose: to say something about the character behind it (dvs mig). Or if I had let myself be lured into sensationalism, effects for the sake of effects and a callous fascination with suffering. Had I created a Norvegian Psycho, just such a book, one that had become a sort of guilty pl easure for closet sadists?
ellauri245.html on line 174: Lepakkomiehen norjalaisen poliisin nimi on sattuvasti Harry Hole. Se menee ausseihin selvittämään jotain murhajuttua. Kolleega Andrew on Australian neekeri (norjalaisten lempinimi). Spermaa ei kuitenkaan löytynyt. Sitä löytyy Camillan kirjasta, tai Keazin Endymionin karvoista. Spermaa ei löytynyt kuten sanottu, koska norjalaisen puoli-TV-julkkisnaisen (23v, blondi, nätti elävänä) kohtu oli viilletty auki kuin norjalainen kalafilee. Ehkä sei koiranruokalaatuna. Toisen Harry Hole -romaaninsa Torakat (1998) Nesbø kirjoitti Bangkokissa, jonne myös teos sijoittuu. Tässä taitaa olla joku sapl uuna? Onko Nesbö sarjamatkaopas? Sehän se. Mutta jäbään ei ole luottamista pitemmälle kun sen jaxaa heittää, Torakassa se väittää mm että Kiinassa on vasemmanpuoleinen liikenne. Se ei ole muuta kuin tietämätön tolvana.
ellauri245.html on line 203: The popularity of "goblin mode" may be linked to a rejection of the carefully curated lifestyles often presented by users of social media pl atforms. The trend has also been linked to a manner of coping with the effects of the COVID-19 pandemic on society since this is described as a way of life that gives peopl e permission to ditch societal norms and embrace their basic instincts and in social media, letting their inner goblin out has been a freeing experience.
ellauri245.html on line 259: Leopold´s Appl e.
ellauri245.html on line 261: First devised and created in the Belgian Congo by King Leopold, son of Queen Victoria. A smooth metallic ball, slightly smaller than a tennis ball in circumference with tiny apertures along its contours. Made of gold, GAL-TAN, and steel, the ball is a minor feat of engineering. An additional small opening reveals a looped wire. The ball is pl aced in the victim´s mouth. When the wire is pulled, 24 tiny termite monkey antennae jut out from the ball, causing it to lodge itself in the mouth. At this point, though not overly painful, the victim cannot remove the ball, nor can another extract it for them. With a second pull of the wire, 24 needles erupt outwards from the extended antennae in 24 directions, causing severe damage to throat, cheek, tongue, palate, nasal cavity, etc....the victim will usually bleed out slowly in excruciating pain. How was this used for torture? It usually involved 2 victims. One who who was forced to swallow the ball, and the second who was forced to watch the effects. That second person would usually begin talking quickly about other things. Naah, too sophisticated. A waste on the Congolese niggahs. Cutting hands and feet worked just as well.
ellauri245.html on line 263: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/52/MutilatedChildrenFromCongo.jpg/220px-MutilatedChildrenFromCongo.jpg" height="350px" />
ellauri245.html on line 264: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5a/Nsala_of_Wala_in_the_Nsongo_District.jpg/500px-Nsala_of_Wala_in_the_Nsongo_District.jpg"" height="350px" />
ellauri245.html on line 267: Nsala of Wala in the Nsongo District (Abir Concession) is a photograph published by Edmund Dene Morel in his book King Leopold's Rule in Africa, in 1904. The image depicts a Congolese man named Nsala examining the severed foot and hand of his five-year-old daughter, Boali. The photograph was taken by Alice Seeley Harris, the wife of a missionary, in the village of Baringa on 14 May 1904. It was subsequently empl oyed as a tool in the inhumane media campaign against the situation in the Congo Free State, which was largely characterised by rubber dildos.
ellauri245.html on line 271: Leopold´s Appl e is actually a brand of whiskey. But The pear of anguish , also known as choke pear or mouth pear, is a torture device based on mechanisms of unknown use from the early modern period. The mechanism consists of a pear-shaped metal body divided into spoon-like segments that can be spread apart with a spring or by turning a key. Its proposed functionality as a torture device is to be variously inserted into the mouth, rectum, or vagina, and then expanded to gag or mutilate the victim. There is no contemporary evidence of such a torture device existing in the medieval era, and ultimately the utility of genuine appl es and pears stuck in any hole at all remains unknown. Except that an appl e forced in his mouth as a kid by his chum Anders B. got Jo Nesbø going as a pulp writer. Iron Maiden was a vagina dentata style box with nails inside.
ellauri245.html on line 285: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/16/Anders_Behring_Breivik_%28cropped%29.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri245.html on line 290: „Ein packendes Buch, mit einem Autor in Höchstform. Charaktere, Schaupl ätze und Dialoge sorgen dafür, dass beim Lesen keine Langeweile aufkommt. Dabei geht es nicht nur um einen brutalen Serien-Mörder, sondern auch um die Spätfolgen einer psychischen Demütigung, um Macht und Ehrgeiz, um menschliche Abgründe. Ein Genuss für Fans des skandinavischen Krimis, aber auch ein Schmankerl für Neueinsteiger.“
ellauri245.html on line 297: Every review of Nesbø´s work now must also, in some refracted way, be a commentary on Larsson´s wonderful and massively successful Millenium trilogy. Nesbø and Larsson share a wit, a world and a languorous command of pl otlines that spiral out into new pl otlines, resisting the brutal and sometimes deadening efficiency of the American crime novel.
ellauri245.html on line 317: One year ago, a heavily armed man dressed as a police officer appeared on the beach of a youth summer camp in Norway. The kids had no way of knowing he was targeting them for the ills of Europe. Then he started shooting. And shooting. Where were the real cops? By the end of the day, seventy-seven peopl e had been killed, the deadliest attack in that country since World War II. As told by the survivors, these are the beat-by-beat horrors of those terrifying 198 minutes. the Utoya Massacre On July 22, 2011. Lue ja kauhistu, tää on hurja jännäri!
ellauri245.html on line 326: Bury Me Standing: The Gypsies and Their Journey is a non-fiction book on the lives of the Romani peopl e by the American-Uruguayan writer Isabel Fonseca published in 1995. The book is organized in eight chapters and contains black and white photographs and maps.
ellauri245.html on line 342: Gypsies are unempl oyed.
ellauri245.html on line 351: Aha! The title "Bury me standing" comes from a proverb which describes the pl ight of the Gypsies: "Bury me standing. I´ve been on my knees all my life." But that was just a joke! Ei Charlie Chapl iniakaan kuopattu pystyasennosssa.
ellauri245.html on line 353: After the funeral, all of the loved one’s possessions – and here’s the real head-turner – are burned. (So much for heirlooms). Once again, the primary concern is marimé (contamination), and family members want to destroy all material ties to the dead. Given the massive cost of such destruction, however, today many peopl e sell the possessions – though not to other Gypsies of course.
ellauri245.html on line 358: VIDEO
ellauri245.html on line 381: hun tydelig på at bokens kompl ott var 100% fiksjon. Boken hadde ikke grobunn i
ellauri245.html on line 382: verken saker eller noe hun hadde jobbet med tidligere, og det var viktig for henne å få frem at hun ikke har brutt taushetspl ikten (NRK, 2014). Hun forteller videre at hun alltid har lest krimbøker, og ofte latt seg irritere av feil og unøyaktigheter i bøkene.
ellauri245.html on line 417: Jeg har oppl evd flere ganger at de tror at jeg lyver... Jeg sier at vi har gode
ellauri245.html on line 451: The eastern Democratic Republic of the Congo (DRC) has a history of conflict, where various armies, rebel groups, and outside actors have profited from mining while contributing to violence and expl oitation during wars in the region. The four main end products of mining in the eastern DRC are tin, tungsten, tantalum, and gold, which are extracted and passed through a variety of intermediaries before being sold to international markets. These four products, (known as the 3TGs) are essential in the manufacture of a variety of devices, including consumer electronics such as smartphones, tablets, and computers. Tantaliittikapasiittorissa on enemmän kapassiteettia kuin alumiinisissa, mutta ne ovat kalliita, koska ne on tehty konfliktimineraalista.
ellauri245.html on line 491: Hankin &kumpp. työtilat ovat työsuojelumääräysten vastaiset. Mutta sitä jänskempäähän se vain on. Mobildekning ja internettilkobling on kaikki mitä ne tarvizee, pl us kahvikone tietysti. Med en NATO-bygd søkemotor som er bedre en Google eller Yahoo. Det er skrevet flere hyllemetermed faglitteratur om hva som karakteriserer seriemordare. Dr er ofte narsistiska skallige forfattere, cirka 175cm i höjd, fra Norge. Hank er en flugulort.
ellauri245.html on line 507: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/87/Trygve_Lie_1938.jpg/330px-Trygve_Lie_1938.jpg" width="25%" />
ellauri245.html on line 517: Fritjof i Ytre Enebakk on Vesa-Matti Loiriakin puisevampi norjalainen juntti"huumori"TVpl äjäys. Se mainitaan "ohimennen" moneen kertaan Panssarinyrkissä. Tä on kai sitten Nääsböön kontribuutio by way of comic relief.
ellauri245.html on line 519: VIDEO
ellauri245.html on line 524: Siis onko tän kaverin nimi norjaxi Harry Hå? Eipäs olekaan? vaan: The name is derived from Old Norse Hólar, the pl ural form of hóll, meaning "round and isolated hill." Harry´s surname is also the name of a historic Norwegian town (Hole, Norway) with a heritage that goes back to the Viking Age. Eipäs, vaan: On July 22, 2011, the Workers´ Youth League summer camp, which took pl ace on Utøya in Hole, was attacked as part of the 2011 Norway attacks.
ellauri245.html on line 532: The Clash were an English rock band formed in London in 1976 who were key pl ayers in the original wave of British punk rock. Billed as "The Only Band That Matters", they also contributed to the post-punk and new wave movements that emerged in the wake of punk and empl oyed elements of a variety of genres including reggae, dub, funk, ska, and rockabilly. For most of their recording career, the Clash consisted of lead vocalist and rhythm guitarist Joe Strummer, lead guitarist and vocalist Mick Jones, bassist Paul Simonon, and drummer Nicky "Topper" Headon.
ellauri245.html on line 569: Mies otti erilaisia pikavippejä ja kulutusluottoja 12 968 euron edestä avopuolisonsa nimissä. Hän yritti myös ottaa yhteensä 8 000 kpl erilaisia lainoja naisen nimissä, mutta luottohakemukset hylättiin. Sen lisäksi mies sai naisen ostamaan itselleen tavaraa yli 1 800 euron arvosta.
ellauri245.html on line 598: Among the material monists were the three Milesian philosophers: Thales, who believed that everything was composed of water; Anaximander, who believed it was apeiron; and Anaximenes, who believed it was air. Although their theories were primitive, these philosophers were the first to give an expl anation of the physical world without referencing the supernatural; this opened the way for much of modern science (and philosophy), which has the same goal of expl aining the world without dependence on the supernatural.
ellauri245.html on line 630: ploads/2019/06/view-volcanoes-kivu-drc72-1024x768.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri245.html on line 636: ple.com/profiles/images/leopold-ii-of-belgium-1.jpg" height="190+x" />
ellauri245.html on line 638: ploads/2018/08/30-May-1994-Thousands-of-Rwandan-refugees-cross-the-border-into-Tanzania-carrying-their-belongings.-Jeremiah-Kamau-Reuters.jpg" height="190px" />
ellauri245.html on line 642: VIDEO
ellauri245.html on line 643: VIDEO
ellauri245.html on line 660: Women formed a core part of the Mau Mau, especially in maintaining suppl y lines. Initially able to avoid the suspicion, they moved through colonial spaces and between Mau Mau hideouts and strongholds, to deliver vital suppl ies and services to guerrilla fighters including food, ammunition, medical care, and of course, information. An unknown number also fought in the war, with the most high-ranking being Field Marshal Muthoni.
ellauri245.html on line 662: The British and international view was that Mau Mau was a savage, violent, and depraved tribal cult, an expression of unrestrained emotion rather than reason. Mau Mau was "perverted tribalism" that sought to take the Kikuyu peopl e back to "the bad old days" before British rule. What motherfuckers!
ellauri245.html on line 670: Norway gave the Congo NOK 40 million (US $15.7 million) in 2003. Vidar Helgesen, the Norwegian Secretary of State said: "In spite of some hopeful signs in the peace process and the establishment of a transitional government in the capital, Kinshasa, the humanitarian situation in the eastern part of the country is precarious." In 2004, all previous debt was forgiven. In 2007, the Secretaries General of the five largest Norwegian humanitarian organizations visited the Congo to access the crisis. In 2008, an additional NOK 15 million were suppl ied.
ellauri245.html on line 672: In 2009, Minister of Defence Anne-Grete Strøm-Erichsen visited the Congo to observe the conflict. She agreed to send 2 Norwegian guys to suppl y manpower to the United Nations peace-keeping forces during the Kivu conflict.
ellauri245.html on line 673: In 2009, Norwegian nationals Joshua French and Tjostolv Moland were arrested and charged in the killing of their hired driver, attempted murder of a witness, espionage, armed robbery and the possession of illegal firearms. They were found guilty and sentenced to death, and also fined, along with their empl oyer Norway—$60 million.
ellauri245.html on line 675: Jonas Gahr Støre, Norway´s Foreign Minister said: "I strongly react to the death sentence of two Norwegians ... Norway is a principl ed opponent of the death penalty and I will contact the DRC's foreign minister to gabble about this." According to Bloomberg.com "Norway also objected to the espionage conviction and the inclusion of the country in the fine, Stoere [sic] said. 'Norway isn't a part of this case.'" Sick. It is more than obvious that she was.
ellauri245.html on line 683: VIDEO
ellauri245.html on line 688: They're looking for a little romance Saanko pl uvan vai tanssitaanko eka
ellauri245.html on line 706: I've never seen so many peopl e want to be there by your side Porukkaa ui vitusti sun liiveihin
ellauri245.html on line 710: Such a feeling of compl ete and utter love Pikkuveli takoo ovea ihan villinä
ellauri245.html on line 741: The Duchess of Sussex has prompted anger over her "mocking" demonstration of a curtsy to Elizabeth II. Royal author Gyles Brandreth, a friend of the royals, told TalkTV: "It's embarrassing, because it is mocking - and nobody curtsies to the Queen like that, and nobody would have advised her to do it that way." He added of Harry: "He would know that the bow, as it were, is a brief nod and the curtsy is to show respect for the sovereign, and in the case of the Queen - a lady in her 90s who actually had earned respect through a lifetime of service, and that was it. To do this sort of mocking thing is uncomfortable, but it is a cultural difference. It's like you would do a curtsy if you were pl aying in Snow White." Harry näyttää hitaalta neandertaliraukalta jonka ympärillä cromagnon-apina tekee piruetteja.
ellauri246.html on line 34: Oh korsteenit play:none">Poliittista runoutta
ellauri246.html on line 77: Under sin barndom bodde han i Stockholm. Fadern hade varit fondmäklare och familjen var ekonomiskt välbärgad. Ekelöfs far blev, på grund av syfilis, psykiskt sjuk och avled då Ekelöf var nio år gammal. Gunnar hade många storslagna pl aner som inte blev av.
ellauri246.html on line 79: År 1928 blev Ekelöf myndig och ärvde faderns förmögenhet. Han hade pl aner på att emigrera till Kenya där en bekant var chef för en stor kaffepl antage, vilket dock inte heller blev av.
ellauri246.html on line 91: At first this poem seems very pastoral, but it was written in the summer of either 1940 or 1941. Sweden was not at war, but had seen Denmark and Norway occupied by Nazi Germany and Finland defeated by the Soviet Union. Ekelöf was firmly opposed to the totalitarian regimes, so see this poem as finding a moment of peace, pineappl e and bananas in a time of other peopl e's crisis.
ellauri246.html on line 99: gås, pl untan och pipan.
ellauri246.html on line 101: sprider ett återsken över bordet av skrovliga pl ankor vaan levittää leveistä laudoista tehdyn pöydän ylle kajastusta
ellauri246.html on line 141: VIDEO
ellauri246.html on line 219: That pave with level flags their burial-pl ace, jotka peittävät kaakeleina hautuumaan,
ellauri246.html on line 265: Trampl ed and beaten were they as the sand, Ne lisääntyivät kuitenkin kuin hiekanjyvät,
ellauri246.html on line 287: ‘It was a pogrom’: Be’eri survivors on the horrific attack by Hamas terrorists. Bagged bodies of Hamas militants lying everywhere cluttering the pl ace.
ellauri246.html on line 293: Curve fence rotten pl ywood. Käyrä aita lahosta vanerista.
ellauri246.html on line 325: For curved fence of rotten pl ywood, Tää laho vaneriaita vielä maxetaan,
ellauri246.html on line 844: Samana ajanjaksona Brodsky yritti järjestää julkaisun Moskovanlehdissä. Kuitenkin verbi "yritti" on liian kovaa tästä. Tulostuksen saavuttamiseksi oli tarpeen osoittaa jonkinlainen dipl omaattisuus, johon Brodski ei pystynyt. Kun hänet johti kalastajan kirjoittajalle, joka voisi auttaa julkaisuissa, hän oli niin vihainen Rybakov hänen ylimielisyytensä, että hän jopa kolmekymmentä vuotta myöhemmin, hän muistutti muistelmista kokouksesta "huono henkilö, joka halusi lukea tarpeettomia runoja ilman loppua . " Kun v.p. Aksenov esittelee Brodskin "nuorten" toimittajien kanssa, johtanut hänet toimituksellisen hallituksen kokoukseen ", Joseph tästä toimituksellisesta hallituksesta kuuli, että Neuvostoliiton painajainen, jossa nuorten kirjoittajat ovat yksinkertaisesti menettäneet tietoisuuden.<…> Hän sanoi, että hän oli läsnä Sabbath Witchesissa. Ja itse asiassa se oli suurin mahdollinen liberalismi. "
ellauri246.html on line 864: Nobel-palkinnoista. Brodsky uskoi aina, että hänelle voitaisiin merkitä tämä erittäin arvostettu palkkio. Hänellä oli urheilun luonteeltaan kilpaileva laskimo - nuorista vuosilta välittömän reaktion muiden ihmisten runoihin: Voin tehdä sen paremmin. Eri palkintoja ja palkintoja, jotka putosivat siihen vuoden 1972 jälkeen, hän hoiti pragmaattisesti tai ironisesti antamatta heille paljon merkitystä. Mutta Nobel-palkinto oli hänelle, sekä kaikille venäläisille, erikoishalolle. Nobel-komitean työtä pidetään salaisena, mutta huhujen mukaan Brodski nimitettiin jo vuonna 1980, jolloin Caclaw Milos tuli Laureate. Ja nyt on tietoa Nobelin valinnasta 1987, jossa Brodsky oli mukana. Palkinnon myöntäminen, Nobel komitea laatii lyhyesti, mikä on laureatin tärkein ansio. Dipl omassa Brodskyllä seisoi: "Kattavalle kirjallisuudelle, joka erottaa ajatuksen ja runollisen voimakkuuden selkeyden."
ellauri247.html on line 40: SUURI KASKUKIRJA play:none">Kaskuja
ellauri247.html on line 43: pload/MM09-1498.jpg" height="190px" />
ellauri247.html on line 84: The Baiame story tells how Baiame came down from the sky to the land and created rivers, mountains, and forests. He then gave the peopl e their laws of life, traditions, songs, and culture. He also created the first initiation site. This is known as a bora; a pl ace where boys were initiated into manhood.
ellauri247.html on line 89: Catherine Eliza Somerville Stow (1 May 1856 – 27 March 1940), who wrote as K. Langloh Parker, was a South Australian born writer who lived in northern New South Wales in the late nineteenth century. She is best known for recording the stories of the Ualarai around her. Her testimony is one of the best accounts of the beliefs and stories of an Aboriginal peopl e in north-west New South Wales at that time. However, her accounts reflect European attitudes of the time. Anyways, she was not around before Ridley. William Ridley (14 September 1819 – 26 September 1878) was an English Presbyterian missionary who studied Australian Aboriginal languages, particularly Gamilaraay, before Catherine was more than a twinkle in her daddy's eye. Baiame may have been some abo hero before Bill's arrival, but the details about his doings could still be coloured by the Middle Eastern tentmen's literary treasure brought in by Bill.
ellauri247.html on line 95: Marking the tree with his combo (stone tomahawk) that he might know it again, he returned to hurry on his wives who were some way behind. He wanted them to come on, climb the tree, and chop out the honey. When they reached the marked tree one of the women climbed up. She called out to Narahdarn that the honey was in a spl it in the tree. He called back to her to put her hand in and get it out. She put her arm in, but found she could not get it out again. Narahdarn climbed up to help her, but found when he reached her that the only way to free her was to cut off her arm. This he did before she had time to realise what he was going to do, and protest. So great was the shock to her that she died instantly. Narahdarn carried down her lifeless body and commanded her sister, his other wife, to go up, chop out the arm, and get the honey. She protested, declaring the bees would have taken the honey away by now. "Not so," he said; "go at once."
ellauri247.html on line 114: GLOSSARY Bahloo, moon. Beeargah, hawk. Beeleer, black cockatoo. Beereeun, prickly lizard. Bibbee, woodpecker, bird. Bibbil, shiny-leaved box-tree. Bilber, a large kind of rat. Bindeah, a prickle or small thorn. Birrahlee, baby. Birrableegul, children. Birrahgnooloo, woman's name, meaning "face like a tomahawk handle." Boobootella, the big bunch of feathers at the back of an emu. Boolooral, an owl. Boomerang, a curved weapon used in hunting and in warfare by the blacks; called Burren by the Narran blacks. Borah, a large gathering of blacks where the boys are initiated into the mysteries which make them young men. Bou-gou-doo-gahdah, the rain bird. Bouyou, legs. Bowrah or Bohrah, kangaroo. Bralgahs, native companion, bird. Bubberah, boomerang that returns and bumps you in the back of your head. Buckandee, native cat. Buggoo, flying squirrel. Bulgahnunnoo, bark-backed. Bunbundoolooey, brown flock pigeon. Bunnyyarl, flies. Byamee, man's name, meaning "big man." Bwana, African sir. Capparis, caper. Combi, bag made of kangaroo skins. Comfy, foldable pl astic pillow. Cookooburrah, laughing jackass. Coorigil, name of pl ace, meaning sign of bees. Corrobboree, black fellows' dance. Cunnembeillee, woman's name, meaning pig-weed root. Curree guin guin, butcher-bird. Daen, black fellows. Dardurr, bark, humpy or shed. Dayah minyah, carpet snake (vällykäärme). Deegeenboyah, soldier-bird. Decreeree, willy wagtail. Dinewan, emu. Dingo, native dog. Doonburr, a grass seed. Doongara, lightning. Dummerh, 2nd rate pigeons. Dungle, water hole. Dunnia, wattle. Eär moonan, long sharp teeth. Effendi, Turkish sir. Euloo marah, large tree grubs. Edible. In fact yummy. Euloo wirree, rainbow. Gayandy, borah devil. Galah or Gilah, a French grey and rose-coloured cockatoo. Gidgereegah, a species of small parrot. Gooeea, warriors. Googarh, iguana. Googoolguyyah, run into trees. Googoorewon, pl ace of trees. Goolahwilleel, absolutely top-knot pigeon. Gooloo, magpie. Goomade, red stamp. Goomai, water rat. Goomblegubbon, bastard or just pl ain turkey. Goomillah, young girl's dress, consisting of waist strings made of opossum's sinews with strands of woven opossum's hair hanging about a foot square in front. Yummy. Goonur, kangaroo rat. Goug gour gahgah, laughing-jackass. Literal meaning, "Take a stick of bamboo and boil it in the water." Grooee, handsome foliaged tree bearing a pl um-like fruit, tart and bitter, but much liked by the blacks. Guinary, light eagle hawk. Guineboo, robin redbreast. Gurraymy, borah devil. Gwai, red. Gwaibillah, star. Kurreah, an alligator. Mahthi, dog. Maimah, stones. Maira, paddy melon. Massa, American sir. May or Mayr, wind. Mayrah, spring wind. Meainei, girls. Midjee, a species of acacia. Millair, species of kangaroo rat. Moodai, opossum. Moogaray, hailstones. Mooninguggahgul, mosquito-calling bird. Moonoon, emu spear. Mooregoo, motoke. Mooroonumildah, having no eyes. Morilla or Moorillah, pebbly ridges. Mubboo, beefwood-tree. Mullyan, eagle hawk. Mullyangah, the morning star. Murgah muggui, big grey spider. Murrawondah, climbing rat. Narahdarn, bat. Noongahburrah, tribe of blacks on the Narran. Nullah nullah, a club or heavy-headed weapon. Nurroo gay gay, dreadful pain. Nyunnoo or Nunnoo, a grass humpy. Ooboon, blue-tongued lizard. Oolah, red prickly lizard. Oongnairwah, black driver. Ouyan, curlew. Piggiebillah, ant-eater. One of the Echidna, a marsupial. Quarrian, a kind of parrot. Quatha, quandong; a red fruit like a round red pl um. Sahib, Indian sir. Senhor, Brazilian sir. U e hu, rain, only so called in song. Waligoo, to hide. Wahroogah, children. Wahn, crow. Walla Walla, pl ace of many waters. Wallah, I swear to God. Wallah, Indian that carries out a manual task. Waywah, worn by men, consisting of a waistband made of opossum's sinews with bunches of strips of paddy melon skins hanging from it. Wayambeh, turtle. Weeoombeen, a small bird, girl's name. Some thing like robin redbreast, only with longer tail and not so red a breast. Willgoo willgoo, pointed stick with feathers on top. Widya nurrah, a wooden battle-axe shaped weapon. Wirree, small piece of bark, canoe-shaped. Wirreenun, priest or doctor. Womba, mad. Wondah, spirit or ghost. Wurranunnah, wild bees. Wurranunnah, tame bees. Wurrawilberoo, whirlwind with a devil in it; also clouds of Magellan. Yaraan, white gum-tree. Yhi, the sun. Yuckay, oh dear!
ellauri247.html on line 116: ploads/2018/01/How-to-Say-Master-in-Chinese-Shifu-Mandarin-Sifu-Cantonese-768x512.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri247.html on line 117: ploads/2018/01/師傅,師父-Sifu-Cantonese.mp3">
ellauri247.html on line 173: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/07/Bluestockings3.jpg/220px-Bluestockings3.jpg" />
ellauri247.html on line 177: The Tory Samuel Johnson was a critic of her politics: Sir, there is one Mrs. Macaulay in this town, a great republican. One day when I was at her house, I put on a very grave countenance, and said to her, "Madam, I am now become a convert to your way of thinking. I am convinced that all mankind are upon an equal footing; and to give you an unquestionable proof, Madam, that I am in earnest, here is a very sensible, civil, well-behaved fellow-citizen, your footman; I desire that he may be allowed to sit down and dine with us." I thus, Sir, shewed her the absurdity of the levelling doctrine. She has never liked me since. Sir, your levellers wish to level down as far as themselves; but they cannot bear levelling up to themselves. They would all have some peopl e under them; why not then have some peopl e above them?
ellauri247.html on line 181: After travelling in Holland, Germany and Russia in 1776, Graham set up practice in Bath, Somerset. Advertisements promoting cures using "Effluvia, Vapours and Appl ications ætherial, magnetic or electric" attracted his first celebrity patient, the historian Catharine Macaulay. She became the subject of scandal in 1778 when she married James Graham’s 21-year-old brother William, who was less than half her age. At the end of 1792, Graham began to experiment with extended fasting to prolong his life. He died at his home in Edinburgh in 1794. Grahamille kävi kuin mustalaisen hevoselle, kuoli juuri kun oli oppimassa paastolle.
ellauri247.html on line 197: In W. M. Thackeray's novel Vanity Fair, Rebecca Sharp and Miss Rose Crawley read Humphry Clinker: "Once, when Mr. Crawley asked what the young peopl e were reading, the governess repl ied 'Smollett'. 'Oh, Smollett,' said Mr. Crawley, quite satisfied. 'His history is more dull, but by no means so dangerous as that of Mr. Hume. It is history you are reading?' 'Yes,' said Miss Rose; without, however, adding that it was the history of Mr. Humphry Clinker."
ellauri247.html on line 234: Thomas Nashe perusti teoksellaan The Unfortunate Traveller, or, The Life of Jacke Wilton (1594) englantilaisen seikkailullisen veijariromaanin tyypin (rogue story). Saksan kirjallisuuden tunnetuin veijariromaani on Hans Jacob von Grimmelshausenin Der abenteurliche Simpl icissimus Teutsch (1669, Seikkailukas Simpl icissimus), jonka innoittamana julkaistiin muitakin "simpl ikiaanisia" kirjoja, kuten Johan Beerin Der simpl icianische Weltkucker (1677–1679) ja Daniel Speerin Der Ungarische oder Dacianische Simpl icissimus (1683). Tunnettuja veijariromaaneja ovat myös ranskalaisen Alain-René Lesagen Histoire de Gil Blas de Santillane (1715–1735, Kavaljeerin muistelmat) sekä englantilaisten Daniel Defoen Moll Flanders (1722, suom.), Henry Fieldingin Jonathan Wild (1743), Tobias Smollettin The Adventures of Roderick Random (1748) ja William Thackerayn The Luck of Barry Lyndon (1844).
ellauri247.html on line 236: Veijariromaanit olivat tavallista suositumpia ensimmäisen ja toisen maailmansodan jälkeisinä vuosina. Nykyajan veijariromaaneissa on perinteiselle veijarihahmolle tuntemattomia moralistin ja anarkistin piirteitä. He ikään kuin edustavat viattomuutta ja kriittistä ajattelua turmeltuneen ja vieraannuttavan maailman keskellä. Moderneja veijariromaaneja ovat esimerkiksi tšekki Jaroslav Hasekin Osudy dobrého vojaka Svejka za svétové valky (1920–1923, Kunnon sotamies Svejkin seikkailut maailmansodassa), yhdysvaltalaisten John Steinbeckin Tortilla Flat (1935, Ystävyyden talo) ja Saul Bellow'n The Adventures of Augie March (1953, Augie Marchin kiemurat) sekä saksalaisten Thomas Mannin Bekenntnisse des Hochstapl ers Felix Krull (1954, Huijari Felix Krull), Günter Grassin Die Blechtrommel (1959, Peltirumpu) ja Heinrich Böllin Ansichten eines Clowns (1963). Mannin teoksessa – kuten veijariromaaneissa usein – korostetaan huijariuden ja taiteilijuuden yhteyttä. Peltirummun rumpali Oskar Matzerath on varsin perinteinen veijarityyppi: hän lopettaa kasvamisensa kolmivuotiaana ja tarkkailee yhteiskuntaa kääpiöperspektiivistä saattaen naurettaviksi kaikki ideologiat.
ellauri247.html on line 261: "The learned Smelfungus travelled from Boulogne to Paris, from Paris to Rome, and so on, but he set out with the spl een and jaundice, and every object he passed by was discoloured or distorted. He wrote an account of them, but 'twas nothing but the account of his miserable feelings. I met Smelfungus in the grand portico of the Pantheon—he was just coming out of it. ''Tis nothing but a huge cockpit,' said he—'I wish you had said nothing worse of the Venus de Medici,' repl ied I—for in passing through Florence, I had heard he had fallen foul upon the goddess, and used her worse than a common strumpet, without the least provocation in nature. I popp'd upon Smelfungus again at Turin, in his return home, and a sad tale of sorrowful adventures had he to tell, 'wherein he spoke of moving accidents by flood and field, and of the cannibals which each other eat, the Anthropophagi'; he had been flayed alive, and bedevil'd, and used worse than St. Bartholomew, at every stage he had come at. 'I'll tell it,' cried Smelfungus, 'to the world.' 'You had better tell it,' said I, 'to your physician.'" (Sterne)
ellauri247.html on line 265: The majority of so-called Smollett portraits are not presentments of the novelist at all, but ingeniously altered pl ates of George Washington.
ellauri247.html on line 277: Dover. Smollett finds a good deal to be said for the designation of "a den of thieves" as appl ied to that famous port (where, as a German lady of much later date once compl ained, they "boot ze Bible in ze bedroom, but ze devil in ze bill"), and he grizzles lamentably over the seven guineas, apart from extras, which he had to pay for transport in a Folkestone cutter to Boulogne Mouth.
ellauri247.html on line 286: CICISBEO : In 18th- and 19th-century Italy, the cicisbeo (Italian: [tʃitʃiˈzbɛːo]; pl ural: cicisbei) or cavalier servente (French: chevalier servant) was the man who was the professed gallant or lover of a woman married to someone else. With the knowledge and consent of the husband, the cicisbeo attended his mistress at public entertainments, to church and other occasions, and had privileged access to this woman. The arrangement is comparable to the Spanish cortejo or estrecho and, to a lesser degree, to the French petit-maître.,(petit-maître m (pl ural petits-maîtres) (archaic) dandy, coxcomb). The exact etymology of the word is unknown; some evidence suggests it originally meant "in a whisper" (perhaps an onomatopeic word). Other accounts suggest it is an inversion of bel cece, which means "beautiful chick (pea)". According to the Oxford English Dictionary, the first recorded usage of the term in English was found in a letter by Lady Mary Wortley Montagu dated 1718. The term appears in Italian in Giovanni Maria Muti's Quaresimale Del Padre Maestro Fra Giovanni Maria Muti De Predicatori of 1708 (p. 734).
ellauri247.html on line 288: This arrangement, called the cicisbeatura or cicisbeismo, was widely practised, especially among the nobility of the Italian cities of Genoa, Nice, Venice, Florence and Rome. While many contemporary references to cicisbei and descriptions of their social standing exist, scholars diverge on the exact nature of the phenomenon.Some maintain that this institution was defined by marriage contracts, others question this claim and see it as a peculiarity of 18th-century customs that is not well defined or easily expl ained. Other scholars see it as a sign of the increasing emancipation of aristocratic women in the 18th century.
ellauri247.html on line 290: The cicisbeo was better tolerated if he was known to be homosexual. Regardless of its roots and technicalities, the custom was firmly entrenched. Typically, husbands tolerated or even welcomed the arrangement: Lord Byron, for exampl e, was cicisbeo to Teresa, Contessa Guiccioli. Attempts by the husband to ward off prospective cicisbei or disapproval of the practice in general was likely to be met with ridicule and scorn.
ellauri247.html on line 292: Cicisbei pl ayed by set rules, generally avoiding public displ ays of affection. At public entertainments, they would typically stand behind their seated mistress and whisper in her ear. Customs of the time did not permit them to engage in relationships with any other women during their free time, making the arrangement rather demanding. Either party could decide to end the relationship at any time. A woman's former cicisbei were called spiantati (literally penniless, destroyed), or cast-offs.
ellauri247.html on line 297: "If a Frenchman is admitted into your family, and distinguished by repeated marks of your friendship and regard, the first return he makes for your civilities is to make love to your wife, if she is handsome; if not, to your sister, or daughter, or niece. If he suffers a repulse from your wife, or attempts in vain to debauch your sister, or your daughter, or your niece, he will, rather than not pl ay the traitor with his gallantry, make his addresses to your grandmother; and ten to one but in one shape or another he will find means to ruin the peace of a family in which he has been so kindly entertained. What he cannot accompl ish by dint of compl iment and personal attendance, he will endeavour to effect by reinforcing these with billets-doux, songs, and verses, of which he always makes a provision for such purposes. If he is detected in these efforts of treachery, and reproached with his ingratitude, he impudently declares that what he had done was no more than simpl e gallantry, considered in France as an indispensable duty on every man who pretended to good breeding. Nay, he will even affirm that his endeavours to corrupt your wife, or deflower your daughter, were the most genuine proofs he could give of his particular regard for your family.
ellauri247.html on line 299: "If there were five hundred dishes at table, a Frenchman will eat of all of them, and then compl ain he has no appetite—this I have several times remarked. A friend of mine gained a considerable wager upon an experiment of this kind; the petit-maitre ate of fourteen different pl ates, besides the dessert, then disparaged the cook, declaring he was no better than a marmiton, or turnspit."
ellauri247.html on line 308: Samuel Johnson (18 September 1709 – 13 December 1784), often wrongly called Dr Johnson, was an English writer who made lasting contributions as a poet, pl aywright, essayist, moralist, critic, biographer, editor and lexicographer. He was a devout Anglican, and a committed Tory. The Oxford Dictionary of National Biography calls him "arguably the man using most four letter words in English history".
ellauri247.html on line 310: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/20/Samuel_Johnson_by_Joshua_Reynolds.jpg/220px-Samuel_Johnson_by_Joshua_Reynolds.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri247.html on line 314: Johnson was 180 cm (5 feet 11 inches) tall when the average height of an Englishman was 165 cm (5 feet 5 inches). Tall and robust, he displ ayed gestures and tics that disconcerted some on meeting him. He had Tourettes syndrome, in fact.
ellauri247.html on line 329: Johnson found empl oyment as undermaster at a school in Market Bosworth, run by Sir Wolstan Dixie, who allowed Johnson to teach without a degree. Johnson was treated as a servant and considered teaching boring, but nonetheless found pl easure in whacking little lads. After an argument with Dixie he left the school, and by June 1732 he had returned home.
ellauri247.html on line 335: Johnson had appl ied for the position of headmaster at Solihull School. Although Johnson's friend Gilbert Walmisley gave his support, Johnson was passed over because the school's directors thought he was "a very haughty, ill-natured gent, and that he has such a way of distorting his face (which though he can't help) the gents think it may affect some lads".
ellauri247.html on line 339: In August, Johnson's lack of an MA degree from Oxford or Cambridge led to his being denied a position as master of the Appl eby Grammar School. In an effort to end such rejections, the 4-ft Pope asked Lord Gower to use his influence to have a degree awarded to Johnson. Gower petitioned Oxford for an honorary degree to be awarded to Johnson, but was told that it was "too much to be asked". Gower then asked a friend of Jonathan Swift to pl ead with Swift to use his influence at the University of Dublin to have a master's degree awarded to Johnson, in the hope that this could then be used to justify an MA from Oxford, but Swift refused to act on Johnson's behalf.
ellauri247.html on line 343: Johnson bragged that he could finish his dictionary project in three years. In comparison, the Académie Française had 40 scholars spending 40 years to compl ete their dictionary, which prompted Johnson to claim, "This is the proportion. Let me see; forty times forty is sixteen hundred. As three to sixteen hundred, so is the proportion of an Englishman to a Frenchman." Rather, the proportion of the civilized vernacular vocabularies of the languages. What a pompous idiot. Although he did not succeed in compl eting the work in three years, he did manage to finish it in eight. Some criticised the dictionary, including the historian Thomas Babington Macaulay, who described Johnson as "a wretched etymologist."
ellauri247.html on line 345: Oli Samilla koko joukko hyviäkin pointteja: Patriotism is the last refuge of a scoundrel. Mutta toisaalta: Johnson had a reputation for despising Scotland and its peopl e. Even during their journey together through Scotland, Johnson "exhibited prejudice and a narrow nationalism".
ellauri247.html on line 353: Johnson displ ayed signs consistent with several diagnoses, including depression and Tourette syndrome. According to Boswell, Johnson "felt himself overwhelmed with an horrible melancholia, with perpetual irritation, fretfulness, and impatience; and with a dejection, gloom, and despair, which made existence misery".
ellauri247.html on line 354: Some, like Macaulay, regarded Johnson as an idiot savant who produced some respectable works, and others, like the Romantic poets, were compl etely opposed to Johnson's views on poetry and literature, especially with regard to Milton. Again, on the positive side, Johnson influenced Jane Austen's writing style and philosophy.
ellauri247.html on line 370: The words "Tweedle-dee and Tweedle-dum" make their first appearance in print as names appl ied to the composers George Frideric Handel and Giovanni Bononcini in "one of the most celebrated and most frequently quoted (and sometimes misquoted) epigrams", satirising disagreements between Handel and Bononcini, written by John Byrom (1692–1763):in his satire, from 1725.
ellauri247.html on line 390: VIDEO
ellauri247.html on line 423: Linda Marshall - Not entirely true; Pope was smitten with LMWM but she rejected his advances (in fact she laughed at him because he was a crippl e). After that he became a bitter enemies and both Pope and Lady Mary wrote vicious satirical poems about each other! But I´m a huge admirer of Pope´s work and as usual it´s superbly written. Although he never married, he had many female friends to whom he wrote witty letters, including Lady Mary Wortley Montagu. It has been alleged that his lifelong friend Martha Blount was his lover. His friend William Cheselden said, according to Joseph Spence, "I could give a more particular account of Mr. Pope's health than perhaps any man. Cibber's slander (of carnosity, abrmal fleshy protrusion growing on any part of the body) is false. He had been gay, but left that way of life upon his acquaintance with Mrs. B."
ellauri247.html on line 446: The Bible to use, avaamasta pipl iaa
ellauri247.html on line 468: When only one appl e had she, Otettuaan vaan yhden omenan,
ellauri247.html on line 501: Le tableau est, par ses dimensions hors du commun (21,39 m de large et de 4,89 m de haut) considéré comme le pl us grand tableau du XIXe siècle.
ellauri247.html on line 505: Présentant une vue panoramique, il expose pl usieurs temps de la célèbre bataille se développant de gauche à droite. Plus d'une centaine de personnages, militaires français à cheval ou à pieds et troupes de l’Émir Abd-el-Kader dans l'ensemble des tentes organisées en cercle de défense qui prend le nom de smala.
ellauri247.html on line 510: Abd el-Kader organisait la smala toujours selon le même principe : elle se composait de quatre enceintes circulaires et concentriques où chaque douar, chaque famille, chaque individu avait sa pl ace fixe et marquée, suivant son rang, son utilité, ses fonctions, ou la confiance qu’il inspirait. La smala arrivant à son gîte, la tente de l’émir se dressait au centre du terrain que le camp devait couvrir.
ellauri247.html on line 520: Les Algériens laissèrent près de trois cents cadavres sur le terrain et les Français seulement neuf hommes tués et douze blessés. Le butin était immense et pl us de 3000 prisonniers furent pris.
ellauri247.html on line 522: Cette "bataille" a été immortalisée par Horace Vernet en 1843. Le tableau est lattraction principale des salles d´Afrique créées par Louis-Philippe au musée de l´histoire de France à Versailles. Il a été interprété à la gravure sur acier par Augustin Burdet. Une pl aque « rue Taguin, 1843 » existe encore, en 2014, à Dijon, sur une voie non publique. Taistelun nimi on riipustettu ranskalaisten sotalippuihin. Taisi olla sammakoiden ihan laitimmmaisia sotamenestyxiä.
ellauri247.html on line 524: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f8/Vervet_Monkey_%28Chlorocebus_pygerythrus%29_%286011903243%29.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri247.html on line 526: ploads/2022/08/Founders-Rothschild_Edmond_James_de-public-domain.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri248.html on line 39: Marjaana Madagaskarissa play:none">Nuorten toiveita
ellauri248.html on line 69: Vaikka mitä genreä tää nyt lopultakin oli?, krimi, mystery, action, whodunit, noir romance, jännitys vai kauhu, se oli jäänyt tv-pl äjäyxen pohjana olleen kirjasarjan lukijoillekin epäselväxi, kuten rajusti heittelevät Goodreads-arvostelut näyttävät. Ilmeisesti kysymys on myös vähän siitä oliko tää "tyttöjen" vaiko "poikien".
ellauri248.html on line 85: Let's go through a few of these points. First, I don't think I've ever read a mystery novel with a less likable main character/narrator. Rob (Adam) Ryan is an asshole, pl ain and simpl e. Sure, he's been warped by his childhood and circumstances, but he does just about every annoying thing you could possibly imagine-- he constantly navel-gazes and feels self pity, he sleeps with then immediately pl ays the stereotypical male "I don't want anything to do with you now" role with his female partner (the person we were told was his best friend, and whom he would never ever sleep with), he acts like an idiot over the 17 year old villain/ temptress/ psychopath/ whatever betraying his partner, and by the end of the book he is worse off than ever. I know that lots of detectives (esp. in hard-boild stories) are unlikable, and have many personal issues, but this guy just took the cake. I wanted to take a baseball bat to his head [hear, hear!]. To make matters worse, French throws in this little gem towards the end of the novel:
ellauri248.html on line 89: Second, the book seriously dates itself with little pop culture references... from Simpsons quotes to mentions of Ricky Martin and The Simpl e Life. Gah. The beginning of the book felt like a very special episode of FRIENDS where Chandler, Monica and Ross solve a mystery. I'm a pretty big pop culture type of guy, but the references dropped in this novel just annoyed me.
ellauri248.html on line 91: The last part is a bit more controversial I suppose. There are two central mysteries in this book-- the first, what happened to Katy, DOES get solved in the course of the novel (the "big break" in the case is our hero realizing suddenly that the murder probably took pl ace in a shed about 20 feet from where the body was found! Really?? No one bothered to think of that for a month?), but the deeper mystery about what happened to Rob/Adam and his friends is never resolved. Your mileage may vary about how annoying that is. Truth be told, it didn't annoy me as much as the fact that the true "villain" of the modern mystery walks without being punished in any way. How incredibly unsatisfying.
ellauri248.html on line 93: Can you write a mystery story that ends with uncertainty? Where you never know who really did it? You can, but it’s unsatisfying. It’s unpl easant for the reader . There needs to be something at the end, some sort of resolution. It’s not that the killer even needs to be caught or locked up. It’s that the reader needs to know. Not knowing is the worst outcome for any mystery story, because we need to believe that everything in the world is knowable. Justice is optional, but answers, at least, are mandatory. And that’s what I love about Holmes. That the answers are so elegant and the world he lives in so ordered and rational. It’s beautiful.”
ellauri248.html on line 96: I know this was a first novel, so hopefully things will improve for her second book. I know, also, that this book won a major award and that lots of peopl e seem to love it to death, so maybe I don't know what I'm talking about. [mystery, whodunit]
ellauri248.html on line 100: Exampl e:
ellauri248.html on line 108: Rob: Yeah, Cassie was like that. She was always finding connections to things and blah blah blah. She made a great partner because hey remember that time 20 years ago when my friends and I were in the woods and blah blah blah I want to tell you about all the peopl e I work with and give you a brief description of each one of them and also expl ain in detail how my boss is and blah blah blah. My mind is trying to remember what happened 20 years ago and you know Cassie and I are great partners and we're best friends and peopl e think we're dating but blah blah blah. Hey, time flies, man. Did I tell you what happened to me as a child? Did I remind you about Katy? Also, her family sure is weird. The peopl e at the dig site are weird. Everyone is a suspect blah blah blah. Let me pause here to tell you how I deal with my roommate and also O'Kelly and my childhood and my current job and Katy and her weird family and interrogation and coffee and vodka and this dream I had and looking for clues and in the woods and we keep hitting dead ends and and and and and blahhhhhhhhhhhh.
ellauri248.html on line 118: I loved this book to pieces, even though I could not shake off the overwhelming feeling of sadness and hollowness after finishing it. I loved it despite (or maybe because?) of the frustrating incompl eteness of some pl ot lines, the frequent lack of resolution, and the unfulfillment of my wishes for the characters and events. [noir romance]
ellauri248.html on line 120: Elle rated it shit: am going to try to expl ain this as spoiler-free [and what spoilers exist are noted] as possible: the ending of this book is maybe one of the most unsatisfying things I have ever read in my whole life. I am not kidding when I say it was such total trash that it ruined the whole book for me.
ellauri248.html on line 127: Emily May rated it amazing: Needless to say, I was compl etely expecting something a bit dark and twisted, a creepy psychological murder mystery with an outcome I never would have seen coming. And I got that. But I never expected this book to leave me feeling so... sad. And you know why? Because I cared. Ms French carefully builds up a compl ex personality for each of her characters, compl ete with a past, a sense of humour and some serious issues to go with it all, and you can't help but care what happens to the detectives even more than you care what happens with the case.
ellauri248.html on line 128: In The Woods is a deepl y psychological read that expl ores the nature of psychopaths and memory - or lack of.
ellauri248.html on line 166: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/34/Malwida_von_Meysenbug%2C_portrait_par_Franz_von_Lenbach.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri248.html on line 167: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/61/Lou_um_1877.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri248.html on line 194: ploads/2015/02/salomefreud.jpg?w=680&ssl=1 height="200px" />
ellauri248.html on line 226: Sopen peukuttama sääliminen ja välittäminen on perseestä, se on sairasta, heikkoa ja silkkaa taantumusta. Samaa sanoivat wallun mukaan Platon, Spinoza ja Kant (pl us la Rochefoucauld, joka työntää tässä pientä piliään kovien poikain leikkeihin kuten wiixiwallukin.)
ellauri248.html on line 242: Daniel in the lions' den (chapter 6 of the Book of Daniel) tells of how the biblical Daniel is saved from lions by the God of Israel "because I was found tasteless before them" (Daniel 6:22). It parallels and compl ements chapter 3, the story of Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego: each begins with the jealousy of non-Jews towards successful Jews and an imperial edict requiring them to compromise their religion, and concludes with divine deliverance and a king who confesses the greatness of the God of the Jews and issues an edict of royal protection to the smug hookynoses. The tales making up chapters 1–6 of Daniel date no earlier than the Hellenistic period (3rd to 2nd century BC) and were probably originally independent, but were collected in the mid-2nd century BC and expanded shortly afterwards with the visions of the later chapters to produce the modern book.
ellauri248.html on line 244: In Daniel 6, Daniel is raised to high office by his royal master Darius the Mede. Daniel's jealous rivals trick Darius into issuing a decree that for thirty days no prayers should be addressed to any god or man but Darius himself; anyone who disobeys this edict is to be thrown to the lions. Pious Daniel continues to pray daily to the God of Israel; and the king, although deepl y distressed, must condemn Daniel to death, for the edicts of the Medes and Persians cannot be altered. Hoping for Daniel's deliverance, Darius has him cast into the pit. At daybreak the king hurries to the pl ace and cries out anxiously, asking if God had saved his friend. Daniel repl ies that his God had sent an angel to the jaws of the lions, "because I was found tasteless before them". The king commands that those who had conspired against Daniel be thrown to the poor overfed lions in his pl ace with their tasty wives and children, and that the whole world should tremble and fear before the God of Daniel. Although Daniel is sometimes depicted as a young man in illustrations of the incident, James Montgomery Boice points out that he would have been over eighty years old at the time. No wonder perhaps that he did not entice the lions.
ellauri248.html on line 283: Tämän raportoi tuttu sankarillinen läski Jenni Tamminen nuorsuomalaisten lehdestä. Sieltä on myös seuraava "uutispl äjäys":
ellauri248.html on line 343: Approximately 56.2 million acres, (87,000 Sq mi) are held in trust by the United States for various Indian tribes and individuals. These are variously called, reservations, pueblos, rancherias, missions, villages, and communities. This amount of land if it all was put in one pl ace would be about the size of Idaho.
ellauri248.html on line 345: The US is 3.797 million mi². The area that was “reserved” for tribes from there previous landholdings is about 2.3% of the total US land. Some reservations are the “reserved” remnants of a tribe’s original land base. Others were created by the federal government from federal land for the resettling Native peopl e who were forcibly relocated from their homelands.
ellauri248.html on line 347: There was also an allotment process starting in the Dawes Act of 1887 until 1934. This was to force more land from Native peopl e. The ostensible reason was to make them individual landholders and thus “Americanized” members of a capitalist system. It was felt this would “solve” the “Indian problem”. In short that it would make them no longer part of the ethnic communities they were members of. However the main push to “solve” the “problem” was by Anglo-Americans who wanted to take that land. Thus land was distributed to tribal members and the “surpl us” was given or sold at a cut rate to White Americans or turned into National Forests and Parks or military bases. Land owned by Native Americans decreased from 138 million acres in 1887 to 48 million acres in 1934. They lost 2/3s of their treaty land base. About 90,000 Native Americans were made landless.
ellauri248.html on line 353: In contrast to the 2.3% of Native land, the Federal Government owns, as National Parks, Forests, BLM, US Ag land, Fish and Wildlife land, military reservations, wildlife refuges and so on, about 28% of the surface area of the US. That is 640 million acres, or 1 million sq miles. That 28% of the US land was and taken by force from tribes, as was all other state lands and privately held lands. If the US peopl e so chose, we could more fairly address the large losses that Native peopl e have had by transferring more of this land to Tribal governments.
ellauri249.html on line 39: MARZIAL play:none">Latin obscenity
ellauri249.html on line 42: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/76/Mercury_god.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri249.html on line 43: An exampl e of a sōpio (see below), the god Mercury was depicted with an enormous penis on this fresco from Pompeii.
ellauri249.html on line 76: Brodsky’s poetry bears the marks of his confrontations with the Russian authorities. “Brodsky is someone who has tasted extremely bitter bread,” wrote Stephen Spender in New Statesman, “and his poetry has the air of being ground out between his teeth. … It should not be supposed that he is a liberal, or even a socialist. He deals in unpl easing, hostile truths and is a realist of the least comforting and comfortable kind. Everything nice that you would like him to think, he does not think. But he is utterly truthful, deepl y religious, fearless and pure. Loving, as well as hating.”
ellauri249.html on line 128: Another euphemism for the penis was cauda ("tail"), which occurs twice in Horace,[22] and continues today in the French derivative queue ("tail" or "penis"). In one pl ace in his Satires (Serm. 2.7.50) Horace writes:
ellauri249.html on line 138: a richer or more handsome guy might piss in the same pl ace.")
ellauri249.html on line 188: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/thumb/1/1a/Khruschev_shoe_fake.jpg/220px-Khruschev_shoe_fake.jpg" />
ellauri249.html on line 335: Tämän jälkeen Hruštšovin annettiin pitää puolustuspuhe. Hän totesi, että on tehnyt työnsä puolueen ja kansan hyväksi eikä asetu vastustamaan siirtämistään eläkkeelle. Työ Stalinin henkilökultin purkamisen parissa on ollut mittavaa ja kiitos kaikesta kuuluu salissa oleville työtovereille. Kesken puheen kuului useita jyrkän linjan stalinistien heittämiä välihuutoja. Loppukeskustelua asiasta ei sallittu ja keskuskomitean ukrainalaisia jäseniä estettiin tulemasta kokoussaliin. Brežnev nimitettiin kokouksen lopuksi uudeksi pääsihteeriksi ja Aleksei Kosygin pääministeriksi. Hruštšov pantiin eläkkeelle korkean iän ja heikon terveyden vuoksi. Hänelle myönnettiin kämänen 500 rupl an suuruinen eläke, hän sai pitää kaupunkiasuntonsa ja huvilansa. Lisäksi annettiin auto. Asunto ja huvila tosin riistettiin häneltä pois. Hruštšoville annettiin uudet palvelijat, jotka tosin olivat enemmän vartijoita kuin palvelijoita.
ellauri249.html on line 358: Because of the phrase's use in Cold War dipl omacy, it became a code word for the atomic bomb. In particular, the Tsar Bomba 50 MT yield thermonuclear test device was nicknamed "Kuzka's mother" by its builders.
ellauri249.html on line 388: William D. Rubenstein, a respected author and historian, outlines the presence of antisemitism in the English-speaking world in one of his essays with the same title. In the essay, he expl ains that there are relatively low levels of antisemitism in the English-speaking world, particularly in Britain and the United States, because of the values associated with Protestantism, the rise of capitalism, and the establishment of constitutional governments that protect civil liberties. Rubenstein does not argue that the treatment of Jews was ideal in these countries, rather he argues that there has been less overt antisemitism in the English-speaking world due to political, ideological, and social structures. Essentially, English-speaking nations experienced lower levels of antisemitism because their liberal and market friendly frameworks limited the organized, violent expression of antisemitism. In his essay, Rubinstein tries to contextualize the reduction of the Jewish population that led to a period of reduced antisemitism: "All Jews were expelled from England in 1290, the first time Jews had been expelled en masse from a European country".
ellauri249.html on line 472: Its origin is set down in Pliny the Elder's Naturalis Historia where he records that a shoemaker (sutor) had approached the painter Apelles of Kos to point out a defect in the artist's rendition of a sandal (crepida from Greek krepis), which Apelles duly corrected. Encouraged by this, the shoemaker then began to enlarge on other defects he considered present in the painting, at which point Apelles advised him that ne supra crepidam sutor iudicaret ('a shoemaker should not judge beyond the shoe'), which advice, Pliny observed, had become a proverbial saying. The Renaissance interest in meddling cluelessly into other peopl e's affairs made the expression popular again.
ellauri249.html on line 476: Karl Marx ridiculed the idea: "'Ne sutor ultra crepidam' – this nec pl us ultra of handicraft wisdom became sheer nonsense, from the moment the watchmaker Watt invented the steam-engine, the barber Arkwright the throstle, and the working-jeweller Fulton the steamship."
ellauri249.html on line 478: The Dunning–Kruger effect is defined as the tendency of peopl e with low ability in a specific area to give overly positive assessments of this ability. The name comes from two singularly dense American psychologists Dunning and Kruger who thought they were the cat's whiskers, though in fact they could not find their own arses with a map.
ellauri249.html on line 482: Why would Finns want to attack Russia? What have they got that we have not? Well, good vodka, and Karelia. I am partial to the Russian Standard Vodka. Besides, it’s distilled from the waters of Lake Ladoga. Thus, every time I have finished a bottle of Russkij Standard, and urinated, I have removed a part of Lake Ladoga and made it part of the local water suppl y. Literally taking back Karelia a bottle at the time.
ellauri249.html on line 484: Of course, with the war in Ukraine, I can’t buy it anymore and I’ve had to repl ace it with Absolut, which is, I’m sorry to say, inferior in taste. (Finlandia’s not available where I live, it’s inferior, too.) That’s why I hope that Putin will retreat from Ukraine as soon as possible so that we can get back to business as usual.
ellauri254.html on line 39: СЕРАПИОНОВЫ БРАТЬЯ play:none">Sosialistista realismia
ellauri254.html on line 102: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/Serapins.jpg/225px-Serapins.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri254.html on line 112: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1b/Remizov_AM.jpg/800px-Remizov_AM.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri254.html on line 117: ploads/2017/10/Pilnjak.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri254.html on line 137: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/ru/thumb/7/70/VAKaverin.jpg/274px-VAKaverin.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri254.html on line 182: VIDEO
ellauri254.html on line 257: Мы широко по дебрям и лесам Me hylätään Eurooppa ja Chapl in charmikas,
ellauri254.html on line 306: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7e/%D0%9B._%D0%94._%D0%A2%D1%80%D0%BE%D1%86%D0%BA%D0%B8%D0%B9%2C_%D0%9B._%D0%91._%D0%9A%D0%B0%D0%BC%D0%B5%D0%BD%D0%B5%D0%B2_%D0%B8_%D0%93._%D0%95._%D0%97%D0%B8%D0%BD%D0%BE%D0%B2%D1%8C%D0%B5%D0%B2._%D0%A1%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%B5%D0%B4%D0%B8%D0%BD%D0%B0_1920-%D1%85_%D0%B3%D0%BE%D0%B4%D0%BE%D0%B2.jpg/330px-%D0%9B._%D0%94._%D0%A2%D1%80%D0%BE%D1%86%D0%BA%D0%B8%D0%B9%2C_%D0%9B._%D0%91._%D0%9A%D0%B0%D0%BC%D0%B5%D0%BD%D0%B5%D0%B2_%D0%B8_%D0%93._%D0%95._%D0%97%D0%B8%D0%BD%D0%BE%D0%B2%D1%8C%D0%B5%D0%B2._%D0%A1%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%B5%D0%B4%D0%B8%D0%BD%D0%B0_1920-%D1%85_%D0%B3%D0%BE%D0%B4%D0%BE%D0%B2.jpg" />
ellauri254.html on line 324: VIDEO
ellauri254.html on line 335: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3f/FichaPolicialDeZinoviev1936.jpg/250px-FichaPolicialDeZinoviev1936.jpg" />
ellauri254.html on line 360: According to the extremely experienced Belgian slavist Emmanuel Waegemans, "who was and still is indeed considered to be the primus inter pares in Russian literature and culture from the eighteenth-century onwards", Russian thinkers themselves contributed largely to this movement: such exampl es would be the irrationalistic and mystical poetry and philosophy of Fyodor Tyutchev and Vladimir Solovyov or Fyodor Dostoyevsky's novels. It is remotely thinkable that these geeks could read the Western alphabet on their own.
ellauri254.html on line 380: ploads/2014/10/SologubAnastasia.jpg?resize=869%2C580&ssl=1" width="40%" />
ellauri254.html on line 385: In 1899, as Fyodor Sologub progressed in the teaching profession while continuing to elaborate his literary career, Sologub was appointed principal of the Andreevskoe municipal school in Saint Petersburg. With the position came an apartment on Vasilievsky Island, which Sologub shared with his sister Olga. In the late 1890s and at the beginning of the 1900s, the art world of Petersburg saw Konstantin Sluchevsky’s ‘Fridays’, and Sergei Diaghilev’s ‘Wednesdays’: literary salons which were attended by the leading poets and artists of the day. Sologub had been a participant of both groups; and between 1905 and 1907, his apartment on Vasilievsky Island became the home of ‘Sundays’, a regular meeting pl ace for Petersburg’s nascent intellectuals.
ellauri254.html on line 387: Alexander Blok was a routine visitor. These years were some of the young Blok’s most prolific, marked by bursts of creative energy as he worked on two lyrical dramas – Balaganchik (‘The Puppet Show‘), featuring the ‘grotesquely luckless’ Pierrot, which was staged in 1906 by Vsevolod Meyerhold at the Komissarzhevskaya Theatre; and The Stranger – and the poetry cycle The Snow Mask, which he compl eted in little over a week at the beginning of 1907. The actress Valentina Verigina often accompanied Blok, and recounted of these visits to and from Sologub’s apartment:
ellauri254.html on line 395: ‘reshaped his daily life in a new and unnecessary way. A big new apartment was rented, small gilt chairs were bought. The walls of the large cold office for some reason were decorated with paintings of Leda by various painters. The quiet talks were repl aced by noisy gatherings with dances and masks. Sologub shaved his mustache and beard, and everyone started to say that he resembled a Roman of the period of decline.’
ellauri254.html on line 399: For the new year’s masquerade, Anastasia lent Remizov an anal hide for use as a costume. Remizov apparently cut the tail from this hide, and attached it to his rear so that it poked out of the front vent of his evening jacket. Anastasia failed to see the funny side, for she had borrowed the hide herself in order to lend it to Remizov. She compl ained in a letter:
ellauri254.html on line 401: ‘To my great dismay, today I discovered that your tail came from my perineum (actually not mine, someone else’s – that’s the problem!). Moreover, I cannot find the rear paws. Have they really been cut off? Where shall I look for them? I await your repl y. I’ve taken the skin to be fixed – but how ever can I return it with patches?’
ellauri254.html on line 429: It is based on several medieval mystery pl ays, including the late 15th-century English morality pl ay Everyman.
ellauri254.html on line 488: Ab 1907 ist eine Zäsur in Georges Kunstbegriff zu erkennen. Seine Werke entsprachen nicht mehr dem Anspruch der sogenannten selbstgenügsamen Kunst, sondern gewannen zunehmend einen prophetischen und religiösen Charakter. Fortan fungierte George zunehmend als ästhetischer Richter oder Ankläger, der gegen eine Zeit der Verflachung anzukämpfen versuchte. Anlass hierzu war vor allem die Begegnung Georges mit dem vierzehnjährigen Maximilian Kronberger 1902 in München. Nach dem pl ötzlichen Tod Kronbergers 1904 an Arschverblütung stellte George ein Gedenkbuch zusammen, das 1906 mit einer Vorrede erschien, in der „Maximin“ (so nennt ihn George) zum Gott erhoben wurde, der „in unsere Kreise getreten war“. Inwiefern dieser „Maximin-Kult“ tatsächlich ein gemeinsamer des Kreises war oder eher ein privater Georges, der dadurch, dass er die Göttlichkeit Maximins erkannt hatte, seine eigene zentrale Stellung rechtfertigen wollte, ist schwierig zu rekonstruieren. Minimax olis ollut turvallisempi strategia, kuiten von Neumann ja Morgenstern ovat osoittaneet. Maxi muna miniin reikään tuottaa vahinkoa, mini muna maxissa reiässä ei ehkä paljon anna, muttei otakaan.
ellauri254.html on line 498: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/VerweyGeorge2_cropped.jpg/800px-VerweyGeorge2_cropped.jpg" />
ellauri254.html on line 501: Klages was born on 10 December 1872, in Hannover, Germany, the son of Friedrich Ferdinand Louis Klages, a businessman and former military officer, and wife Marie Helene née Kolster. In 1878, his sister Helene Klages was born and the two shared a strong bond throughout their lives. In 1882, when Klages was nine years old, his mother died. The death is thought to have been the result of pneumonia. He quickly developed a strong interest in both prose and poetry writing, as well as in Greek and Germanic antiquity. His relationship with his father was strained by the latter's strictness and will to discipl ine him. Nevertheless, attempts to forbid Klages from writing poetry were unsuccessful by both his teachers and parents.
ellauri254.html on line 517: In Munich, the Cosmic Circle of Ludwig Klages and Alfred Schuler, deeming "the Jew the enemy of the human race," gave their erstwhile leader, Stefan George, this ultimatum: "What is your stand on Judah?" He repl ied that he wished he had more such deep-throated Jewish discipl es as Wolfskehl. George's views continued to overlap with those of the Cosmic Circle, especially in invoking the pagan earth mother of "Templ ars." Actually what first launched the George cult on a nationwide basis was Klages's own book, Stefan George, of 1902. The accusation of Klages's Nazism by indignantly pointing out that the Nazis distinctly distanced themselves from Klages. Though the Nazis shared Klages's basic metapolitics and had found him useful for propaganda among professors, they later found the Klages-Schuler cult embarrassing. The intensity of George's break with Klages-Schuler is paralleled by Nietzsche's break with the Jew-hater Richard Wagner; in both cases an intense friendship was severed on the grounds of civilized values higher than friendship. Klages thought that Nazis and Israelis were both wrong in thinking they were the chosen peopl e, with the difference that the Jews had actually already won the beauty contest.
ellauri254.html on line 539: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f9/Morozova_avvakym.jpg" width="20%"/>
ellauri254.html on line 549: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1d/1900_yasnaya_polyana-gorky_and_tolstoy.jpg/250px-1900_yasnaya_polyana-gorky_and_tolstoy.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri254.html on line 550: Vitun pellejä sekä Lexa että Maximi. Lexalla ei traagisesti enää seiso. Maximi näyttää Charles Chapl inilta surtuukissa.
ellauri254.html on line 592: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e0/Qaraylar.jpg" />
ellauri254.html on line 602: Saint-Simon ja hänen aikansa oli Gorkista myös kiinnostava. Dipl omaatti ja muistelmakirjailija Louis de Rouvroy, Saint-Simonin herttua kuvasi La Bruyèrea muistelmissaan kunnialliseksi, rakastettavaksi ja vaatimattomaksi. Sehän oli La Bruyèren Konsta Fedin!
ellauri254.html on line 614: Tammikuussa 1919 Judenitš siirtyi yhdessä vaimonsa Aleksandra Nikolajevan ja adjutanttinsa kanssa Helsinkiin Leniniltä förbittyjen henkilöpaperien turvin. Helsingissä oli marraskuussa 1918 perustettu ns. Venäjän komitea, joka väitti olevansa Venäjän hallitus. Judenitš valittiin tämän komitean johtajaksi. Luoteis-Venäjän valkoiset luovuttivat käytännössä hänelle diktaattorin valtuudet, sillä Judenitš oli maineeltaan moitteeton sotilas, josta odotettiin valkoisen Venäjän pelastajaa. Helsingistä käsin hän ryhtyi rakentamaan sotilaallista, poliittista ja dipl omaattista perustaa laajalle hyökkäykselle Neuvosto-Venäjää vastaan.
ellauri254.html on line 633: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/16/Wrangel_Pyotr_Nikolayevich_1920%2C_cropped.jpg">
ellauri254.html on line 638: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b2/Portr%C3%A4tt%2C_Karl_X_Gustav_-_Skoklosters_slott_-_42216.tif/lossy-page1-800px-Portr%C3%A4tt%2C_Karl_X_Gustav_-_Skoklosters_slott_-_42216.tif.jpg" />
ellauri254.html on line 687: Kamenev osallistui joulukuussa 1917 Brest-Litovskin rauhanneuvotteluihin. Kesken neuvotteluiden Lenin lähetti hänet Isoon-Britanniaan Neuvosto-Venäjän dipl omaattisena edustajana, mutta hänet karkotettiin Britanniasta jo viikon kuluttua. Vitun britti törkimyxet. Nehän kaatoi bolshevikkeja kuin Securitaxen vartijat mustalaisia. Maahanvienti oli aivan ohjeistuxen mukainen. Ukko mustilaisen luunmurtuma oli izeaiheutettu. Laskeppa huvin vuoxi montako kertaa sana "karkotus" esiintyy tässä albumissa. Bolshevikkeja karkotettiin ja ne karkottivat toisiaan kuin torakoita. Paluumatkalla hänet vangittiin Suomessa maaliskuun lopulla 1918. Saksalaiset olivat luvanneet hänelle turvallisen kulun Ahvenanmaan kautta punaiseen Etelä-Suomeen, mutta vastikään saapunut Ahvenanmaan suomalainen kuvernööri Hjalmar von Bonsdorff vangitutti hänet Maarianhaminassa vihollismaan edustajana. Hän oli kuukauden ajan vankina Vita Björnin vankilassa Kastelholmassa ja myöhemmin kolme kuukautta Oulun lääninvankilassa, kunnes hänet vapautettiin elokuun alussa 1918 osana Suomen ja Neuvosto-Venäjän välistä vankienvaihtoa. Zinovjev ja Moisei Urinitski juhlistivat vanginvaihtoseremoniaa Rajajoen sillalla.
ellauri254.html on line 717:
ellauri254.html on line 718: VIDEO
ellauri254.html on line 723: VIDEO
ellauri254.html on line 793: VIDEO
ellauri254.html on line 803: Lunz was born in Saint Petersburg, the capital of the Russian Empire, into a middle-class Jewish family on May 2, 1901. His father, Natan Yakovlevich, an emigrant from Lithuania, was a pharmacist and seller of scientific instruments. His mother, Anna Efimovna, was an accompl ished pianist. As a child, Lev was delicate but very lively; he contracted pneumonia and diphtheria, which may have weakened his heart.
ellauri254.html on line 813: True, until death us part, that is. Cough cough. He argued that too many Russian writers were lazy and self-satisfied; they were barbarians who needed to study pl ot and structure from Western masters. Again, he asserted that pl ot, action and good composition would win the approval of proletarian readers and theatergoers sooner than would a proper political message. He provided a survey of Russian literature from the point of view of the development of pl ot. No bestsellers without spoilers, that is what the rubbernecks expect.
ellauri254.html on line 816: Kaverin managed to republish Lunz's last pl ay, Gorod Pravdy [The City of Truth], in a theatrical journal in 1989, one year after he had helped to effect the first publication in the Soviet Union of Yevgeny Zamyatin's anti-utopian novel, My [We, 1920]. The censorship board was beginning to crack, but still the Lunz collection was delayed beyond the life of the last Serapion (Kaverin) and the end of the Soviet system. Koska matka oli hauska niin, ottivat he mukaan vielä yhden kaverin.
ellauri254.html on line 823: Shklovsky returned to St. Petersburg in early 1918, after the October Revolution. During the Civil War he opposed Bolshevism and took part in an anti-Bolshevik pl ot organised by members of the Socialist-Revolutionary Party. After the conspiracy was discovered by the Cheka, Shklovsky went into hiding, traveling in Russia and the Ukraine, but was eventually pardoned in 1919 due to his connections with Maxim Gorky, and decided to abstain from political activity. His two brothers were executed by the Soviet regime (one in 1918, the other in 1937) and his sister died from hunger in St. Petersburg in 1919.
ellauri254.html on line 826: Among other things, Shklovsky also contributed the pl ot/story distinction (syuzhet/fabula), which separates out the sequence of events the work relates (the story) from the sequence in which those events are presented in the work (the pl ot). Shklovsky ihaili ja matki Sterneä. Se päästettiin takaisin Neuvostolaan pyydettyään tekosiaan anteexi 1923.
ellauri254.html on line 914: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/37/Polarbearexpedition.jpg/440px-Polarbearexpedition.jpg" />
ellauri256.html on line 39: MUODIN HISTORIA play:none"> Ornamentalismia
ellauri256.html on line 46: Rozanov frequently referred to himself as Fyodor Dostoyevsky's "Underground Man" and proclaimed his right to espouse contrary opinions at the same time. He first attracted attention in the 1890s when he published political sketches in the conservative newspaper Novoye Vremya ("New Time"), owned and run by Aleksey Suvorin. Rozanov's comments, always paradoxical and sparking controversy, led him into clashes with the Tsarist government and with radicals such as Lenin. For exampl e, Rozanov readily passed from criticism of Russian Orthodoxy, and even of what he saw as the Christian preoccupation with death, to fervent praise of Christian faith, from praise of Judaism to unabashed anti-Semitism, and from acceptance of homosexuality as yet another side of human nature to vitriolic accusations that Gogol and some other writers had been latent homosexuals.[citation needed] He proclaimed that politics was "obsolete" because "God doesn't want politics any more," constructed an "apocalypse of our times," and recommended the "healthy instincts" of the Russian peopl e, their longing for authority, and their hostility to modernism.
ellauri256.html on line 184: ploads/2018/07/PINCHAS.png" />
ellauri256.html on line 206: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1d/1900_yasnaya_polyana-gorky_and_tolstoy.jpg/250px-1900_yasnaya_polyana-gorky_and_tolstoy.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri256.html on line 207: Vitun pellejä sekä Lexa että Maximi. Lexalla ei traagisesti enää seiso. Maxim on Chapl inin surtuukissa. Vähän siinä on Vasilin eiku Vitalin näköä.
ellauri256.html on line 242: ploads/2019/04/17-interesnih-faktov-ob-andree-belom-e1542008819626.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri256.html on line 317: Aurinko... Ja sitten... Etäpl aneetat...
ellauri256.html on line 362: The girls were under the constant care of a governess. They became fluent in German and French, learned to pl ay the piano and studied at a grammar school. It was there that at the age of 13, Lilya met her future husband, Osip Brik: in the wake of the revolutionary anti-monarchist unrest of 1905, Lilya began to attend political education clubs, one of which was headed by Osip, the son of a jewelry merchant.
ellauri256.html on line 378: Osip did not only let Lilya pl ay around, he also visited brothels with her,” writes Alisa Ganieva, the author of Lilya Brik's biography L.Yu.B. However, Osip had a different interest in prostitutes - he was writing a PhD thesis about them and was something of a “social worker” (giving them legal assistance). However, he took his young wife with him there for fun.
ellauri256.html on line 386: Nevertheless, when after Mayakovsky's death his poetry soon began to be forgotten, Lilya, as his executor (named as such by the poet in his will), took a lot of effort to prevent it. She wrote a letter to Joseph Stalin, who issued an order to ensure that the poet's legacy was not forgotten. So it was largely thanks to her that a whole industry was created around Mayakovsky, with his statues erected all over the country, his works reprinted, and collective farms and pl ants named after him.
ellauri256.html on line 391: Mayakovsky produced a large and diverse body of work during the course of his career: he wrote poems, wrote and directed pl ays, appeared in films, edited the art journal LEF, and produced agitprop posters in support of the Communist Party during the Russian Civil War of 1917–1922. Though Mayakovsky's work regularly demonstrated ideological and patriotic support for the ideology of the Bolsheviks and a strong admiration of Vladimir Lenin, his relationship with the Soviet state was always compl ex and often tumultuous. Mayakovsky often found himself engaged in confrontation with the increasing involvement of the Soviet state in cultural censorship and the development of the State doctrine of Socialist realism. Works that criticized or satirized aspects of the Soviet system, such as the poem "Talking With the Taxman About Poetry" (1926), and the pl ays The Bedbug (1929) and The Bathhouse (1929), met with scorn from the Soviet state and literary establishment. Majakovskin lehdykkä Lef teki pilkkaa serapioniveljistä. Ei ois kannattanut. Fedin pani sen hampaankoloon ja Zishtshov närkästyi.
ellauri256.html on line 429: ploads/2016/09/Vladimir-Mayakovsky-7.jpg" />
ellauri256.html on line 503: The most widely accepted modern definition of the "Western World" is based not upon geographical location but upon the cultural (or when appropriate, political or economic) identities of the countries in question. Using this definition, the Western World includes Europe as well as any countries whose cultures are strongly influenced by European values or whose populations include many peopl e descended from European colonists—for exampl e Australia, New Zealand, and most countries in North and South America .
ellauri256.html on line 510: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e0/Nominal_GDP_of_Countries_Crimea_edited.svg/1024px-Nominal_GDP_of_Countries_Crimea_edited.svg.png" width="70%" />
ellauri256.html on line 518: Boris Sidis (/ˈsaɪdɪs/; October 12, 1867 – October 24, 1923) was a Ukrainian immigrant Jewish psychologist, physician, psychiatrist, and philosopher of education. Sidis studied under William James at Harvard, made 4 degrees, and founded the New York State Psychopathic Institute and the Journal of Abnormal Psychology. He sought to provide insight into why peopl e behave as they do, particularly in cases of a mob frenzy or religious mania. He vigorously appl ied the principl es of Darwinian evolution to the study of psychology. He saw fear as an underlying cause of much human mental suffering and problematic behavior. Boris Sidis opposed mainstream psychology and Sigmund Freud, and thereby died ostracized. Sidis himself derided himself as "silly, pedantic, absurd, and grossly misleading." He later credited his ability to think to his long solitary confinement in Ukraina. Sidis sr died estranged from Sidis jr on October 24, 1923, at the age of 56.
ellauri256.html on line 521: Sidis sr appl ied his own psychological approaches to raising William James jr in whom he wished to promote a high intellectual capacity. Sidis jr could read The New York Times at 18 months. By age eight, he had reportedly taught himself eight languages (Latin, Greek, French, Russian, German, Hebrew, Turkish, and Armenian) and invented another, which he called "Vendergood".
ellauri257.html on line 39: TARAS BULJBA play:none">Koomikoita
ellauri257.html on line 40: ploads/posts/2015-06/1433499381_posts_29229.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri257.html on line 47: Nikolai Vasilyevich Gogol (1 April [O.S. 20 March] 1809 – 4 March [O.S. 21 February] 1852) was a very short story writer and pl aywright of Ukrainian origin. Gogol was born in the Ukrainian Cossack town of Sorochyntsi, in the Poltava Governorate of the Russian Empire. His mother was descended from Leonty Kosyarovsky, an officer of the Lubny Regiment in 1710. His father was supposedly Vasily Gogol-Yanovsky, who died when Gogol was 15 years old, was descendant of Ukrainian Cossacks (see Lyzohub family) and belonged to the 'petty gentry'. His father wrote poetry in Ukrainian almost as well as in Russian, and was an amateur pl aywright in his brother's home theatre. As was typical of the left-bank Ukrainian gentry of the early nineteenth century, the family spoke Ukrainian nearly as well as Russian. As a child, Gogol helped stage pl ays in his uncle's home theatre.
ellauri257.html on line 52: He also intensified his relationship with a starets or spiritual elder, Matvey Konstantinovsky, whom he had known biblically for several years. Konstantinovsky seems to have strengthened in Gogol the fear of perdition (damnation) by insisting on the sinfulness of all his imaginative handiwork. Exaggerated ascetic practices with Matvey undermined his health and he fell into a state of deep depression. On the night of 24 February 1852 he burned some of his manuscripts, which contained most of the second part of Dead Souls. He expl ained this as a mistake, a practical joke pl ayed on him by the Devil in the guise of Matvey Konstantinovsky.[citation needed] Soon thereafter, he took to bed, refused all food, and died in great pain nine days later.
ellauri257.html on line 54: According to serapionist Viktor Shklovsky, Gogol's strange style of writing appl ies his (Shklovsky's) "ostranenie" technique of defamiliarization.
ellauri257.html on line 65: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture; web-share" allowfullscreen>
ellauri257.html on line 69: British-born director J. Lee Thompson (“The Yellow Balloon”/”The Passage”/”King Solomon’s Mines”) helms this bloody spectacular. It’s a serviceable large-scale epic that mainly goes wrong with a mushy subpl ot involving a miscast Tony Curtis as a Cossack wooing a Polish noblewoman, Christine Kaufmann (they were soon to be married in real-life after his divorce from Janet Leigh). It seems to be in genre form when showing hordes of Cossack horsemen flying across the steppes to do battle. It’s based on the novel by Nikolai Gogol and is written without wit or logic by Waldo Salt (former blacklisted writer) and Karl Tunberg.
ellauri257.html on line 71: In 1550, after centuries of fighting for possession of the Ukraine with the Turks, the Cossacks under the leadership of Taras Bulba (Yul Brynner) aid the Polish Army in the battle of the steppes (Argentina subbing for the Ukraine, where reportedly some 10,000 Argentinean extras were empl oyed) and are victorious. Invited to a Polish feast to celebrate, the Cossacks are betrayed by their cunning hosts and flee under cannon fire to safety across the steppes.
ellauri257.html on line 75: It then turns into a family drama, as Andrei rejects his peopl e to return to Poland and his Princess. The stern dad deals with this betrayal by shooting his son down as a traitor when he tries to raid the Cossack camp for food for his captive Princess, who the Poles threaten to burn at the stake unless Andrei acts.
ellauri257.html on line 80: VIDEO
ellauri257.html on line 143: VIDEO
ellauri257.html on line 144: VIDEO
ellauri257.html on line 334: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/cf/Kobzars_Kravchenko_Dremchenko.jpg" />
ellauri257.html on line 346: Kosmos is Gombrowicz´s most compl ex and ambiguous work. In it he portrays how human beings create a vision of the world, what forces, symbolic order and passion take part in this process and how the novel form organises itself in the process of creating sense. Njoopa joo.
ellauri257.html on line 373: Gonzoviz huomauttaa aivan oikein etme ollaan vaan irvisteleviä apinoita tyhjässä kosmoxessa, että apinoiden pl aneetan asukkien eleet on ennalta lasketut ja päivät luetut. Entä sitten? Sellaisia tässä on oltu maailman sivu, joka on jotain muuta luullut on ollut ääliö. En kyllä tajua mitä siinä on ylpeilemistä. Gonzo on pullollaan existentialistisia virhekäsityxiä ja narsistista asennetta. Se taitaa olla mursuwiixi Nietzschen oppipoikia.
ellauri257.html on line 389: My main beef with Peterson is not with his overall philosophy, although I don’t personally vibe with his “life is suffering” Christian stoicism at all, what I find objectionable is his compl ete laziness and lack of rigour in political theory.
ellauri257.html on line 392: What I find most galling is that while he is ranting about “cultural Marxists”, he is actually drawing on ideas espoused by exactly these “cultural Marxists”! İn other words, he is mischaracterising as “the enemy” the very peopl e who created many of the arguments he himself utilises!
ellauri257.html on line 394: Theodor Adorno wrote a book entitled “the Authoritarian Personality” which dissects and attacks authoritarianism in political culture. If Peterson were to pay attention to what peopl e are actually saying rather than jumping on some John Birch Society fantasy, he’d realise the “cultural Marxists” he blame for everything wrong in the world are closer to him on “political correctness” and dogmatic ideology than he thinks.
ellauri257.html on line 396: Peterson is pl aying unforgivably to a militant alt-right audience that has claimed him as their “red pill guru”. He may not want this but he is feeding that narrative.
ellauri257.html on line 398: I don’t like Jordan Peterson, or, more accurately, I don’t like the role Peterson is pl aying in the culture war because I find it intellectually impoverished, uninformed, and feeding into a repugnant far-right cultural revolution that Peterson himself does not necessarily endorse but which he nonetheless gives aid to.
ellauri257.html on line 407: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f1/Witold_Gombrowicz_Polish_passport.jpg/86px-Witold_Gombrowicz_Polish_passport.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri257.html on line 423: Pornography is D.H. Lawrence without the penetration, Diary of a Chambermaid with none of the bite and philosophical imagination. A group of Germans inexpl icably fuck around in the near distance. Frederic curiously precedes a murderous request by squeezing a young blonde’s breasts like melons. A Jewish family hides under the kitchen’s floorboards, but no expl anation is offered for how they got there.
ellauri257.html on line 428: Gombrowiczin partisaani Simian on itäpolakki Ukrainasta. Tää on tämmöstä markiisi de Sade tyyppistä synnintunnosta hikeentymistä. Vizaa paljaalle pyllylle, se tuntuu kivalta. Partisanismi ei sovi vanhoille ja läskeille. Wizi Witold on pervo pedofiili. Että vaan toinen jalka paljaana! Fredrik on Muumipapan nuoruuden ystävä. Hän on ex-regissööri, siitä noi paljaat jalat. Witold, miten voit? Hauska tavata. Hizi mikä apinoiden pl aneetta. Läskien setämiesten urheilumezästystä nuoret notmiinä. Vaclawin on nähtävä tämä. Ei tässä juonta ole, mennään kiihotus edellä. Polta nämä kirjeet. Bara vidare! Utför allt nogrannt! Apinoiden pl aneetalle on hyvä mennä yhdessä ettei olla hulluja.
ellauri257.html on line 452: A Russian wife turned to her husband and asked, "What's this special military operation our glorious leader keeps talking about?" Her husband repl ied, "It's a war to stop America and NATO." "Oh, right” she says “How's it going?"
ellauri257.html on line 454: “Well” he repl ied “so far we have lost over 20 generals, 110,000 troops killed, countless injured, 3000 tanks, 300 aircraft, hundreds of helicopters, countless armoured vehicles, artillery and trucks, our flagship along with other naval ships, our army is being defeated in most areas and we have had to resort to conscription to repl ace our losses”.
ellauri257.html on line 456: “Wow” repl ied the wife “what about America and NATO”?
ellauri257.html on line 458: “They haven’t turned up yet. They just send a lot of money and weapons and let the Ukrainians suppl y the manpower and fill the body bags. Fewer Western casualties this way. The concept has been tested in countless local wars all round the globe."
ellauri257.html on line 489: Singer described himself as "conservative," adding that "I don't believe by flattering the masses all the time we really achieve much." His conservative side was most apparent in his Yiddish writing and journalism, where he was openly hostile to Marxist sociopolitical agendas. In Forverts he once wrote, "It may seem like terrible apikorses [heresy], but conservative governments in America, England, France, have handled Jews no worse than liberal governments.... The Jew's worst enemies were always those elements that the modern Jew convinced himself (really hypnotized himself) were his friends. Interestingly enough, he notes the cultural tensions between Sephardic and Ashkenazi Jewish peopl e during his trip to Haifa and during his stay in the new nation. With the description of Jewish immigration camps in the new land, he foresaw the difficulties and socio-economic tensions in Israel, and hence turned back to his critical views of Zionism. Naah, America is the promised land.
ellauri257.html on line 512: She and Singer met in the Catskills, at a farm village named Mountaindale. Although in the manuscript, Alma is elusive about dates, it is known that the encounter took pl ace in 1937. The two were refugees of what Singer’s older brother, Israel Joshua, by then already the successful novelist I.J. Singer, would soon describe as “a world that is no more.” And the two were married to other spouses. Alma and her husband, Walter Wasserman, along with their two children, Klaus and Inga, had escaped from Germany the previous year and come to America, settling in the Inwood section of Manhattan. As for Isaac — as Alma always called him — he arrived in 1935. She portrays their encounters as romantic, although she appears to have been perfectly aware of his reputation.
ellauri257.html on line 514: Alma doesn’t expl ore the cultural differences that separated them. She was an upper-class German Jew born in Munich, whereas Singer was from Leoncin, a small Polish village northeast of Warsaw. In 1904, when Singer was born, Leoncin was part of the Russian Empire. In Alma’s milieu, Yiddish was a symbol of low caste. Her father had been a textile businessman and her grandfather had been a Handlerichter (LOL), a judge specializing in commercial cases. Although Wasserman, her first husband, was nowhere near as rich in America as he had been in Germany, he was certainly far wealthier than Singer, who was known as an impecunious journalist.
ellauri257.html on line 517: , she worked at Saks 34th Street, and then, until retirement, at Lord & Taylor. On occasion she would accompany Singer to his lectures. They also traveled together to Europe, especially England and France. The purpose of one of those trips was for Alma to show Singer the pl aces in Switzerland where she and her parents had stayed before the war. When she returned to America, she felt ecstatic. In the manuscript, she recollects standing on Broadway, looking in wonder at a fruit store and grocery, admiring their abundance.
ellauri257.html on line 520: What kind of inner, private life did Alma have? Did she tire of years of cooking, cleaning, ironing and sewing for Singer? Was it difficult to be the wife of a public person? How did she cope with his escapades? About these the manuscript remains silent. After all, Alma belonged to a social class where women weren’t encouraged to expl ore such details. In an interview, she does represent the younger Singer as easy-going and says how much he changed over time. But she ascribes those changes to how much peopl e wanted from him and not the other way around.
ellauri257.html on line 528: Singer continued to write and translate his stories and novels throughout the 1980s, until the onset of dementia in 1987. In the end, as Singer suffered from dementia, his relationships with Goran, Menashe and perhaps even Alma soured. The effects lingered unpl easantly even after his death, and as a consequence it’s hard to track the sirvienta. We don’t even know her name or nationality for certain. The idea of a Spanish-speaking maid as an integral part of Singer’s household is ripe not only for biographical scrutiny, but also for fictional development: !Ah! !Ah! !Si! !Si! !Si señor! !!Mas rapido! !Mas profundo!
ellauri257.html on line 536: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a5/Israel_Joszua_Singer_Isaac_Bashevis_Singer_1930s.jpg/220px-Israel_Joszua_Singer_Isaac_Bashevis_Singer_1930s.jpg" />
ellauri257.html on line 571: Lodge was a Christian Spiritualist. In 1909, he published the book Survival of Man which expressed his belief that life after death had been demonstrated by mediumship. His most controversial book was Raymond or Life and Death (1916). The book documented the séances that he and his wife had attended with the medium Gladys Osborne Leonard. Lodge was convinced that his son Raymond who had become cannon food had communicated with him and the book is a description of his son's experiences in the spirit world. According to the book Raymond had reported that those who had died were still the same peopl e that they had been on earth before they "passed over". There were houses, trees and flowers in the Spirit world, which was similar to the earthly realm, although there was no STD. The book also claimed that soldiers who died in World War I smoked cigars and drank whisky and ate pussy also in the spirit world and because of such statements the book was criticised.
ellauri258.html on line 38: KIREÄHERMOISTA VÄKEÄ play:none">Videotörkyä
ellauri258.html on line 53: VIDEO
ellauri258.html on line 91: VIDEO
ellauri258.html on line 126: Sivumennen sanoen, "dignity" on oikeistolainen ällösana, jota on suomittu jo useassa albumissa, erit. Tsihirunkkuṟallin yhteydessä. Oireellisesti, sitä käyttävät mm. paavi Leo työläisistä , Paavi Leo (sama mies) , tarkastaja Gently , Unabomber , Marvin , Derek Parfit , Pete Mencken , käsineiti Peg Atwood , Iisakki Bashevis (Mencken sanoo ettei juutalaisilla ole sitä, Bashevis begs to differ), Pascal , Gud (som taler ud) , Olli Saxi , Ransu Silava , mustarastaat , De Löllö , joku jumalinen Dr. Dodd , Mark Twain , joku taidekriitikko (puuttuu Goyan Mantoilta parvekkeella, toisin kuin Maneetin, joilla on sylikoirokin), Ernesto "Che" Hemingway , Alex Stubb Maidan-demonstraatioista , Kv filosofien päivän ohjelma 2021 , Tytti Yli-Viikarin kainalossa ollut Hawthornen kirja Scarlet Letter , vihan banaanit eli kunniamurhaajat , Lionel Drivel , Alfred Appl e Lolitasta, King David kuuma neitonen hot water bottlena. Mikä on tässä yhteistä? Kermaperseily rupusakin kustannuxella, eräänlaista moraalista charitya.
ellauri258.html on line 136: "Kyllä. Heittäydyn herkästi kohtaamisiin ja koen oloni luontevaksi erilaisissa maailmoissa. Kirjojani on käännetty yli 20 kielelle, ja sen jälkeen kun Hakkerietiikka ja informaatioajan henki nousi bestseller-listalle Yhdysvalloissa aloin saada luentokutsuja kansainvälisille forumeille. Kerran puhuin samalla forumilla Haakonin ja Johnin kanssa. Puhuin siitä, ettei kehitykselle riitä pelkkä taloudellinen päämäärä. Ajatellaan, että jos Martin Luther Kingin unelma olisi ollut Amerikan tuottavuuden kasvattaminen kolmella prosentilla, niin köyhien mutiaisten jengi ei olisi ehkä jaksanut kuunnella häntä. Haakon tarttui siihen ja jatkoi kertomalla Afrikan matkan kokemuksestaan, ja John Bryant komppasi. Päädyimme jatkamaan keskusteluja. Siihen tuli vielä Harry sitten kertomaan Afghanistanista. Yhteen päätymisemme on sen verran outo juttu, että kutsumme itseämme välillä Odd Coupl eksi. John on Comptonista, Los Angelesin jengien hallitsemista hoodeista, Haakon ja Harry kuninkaallisesta perheestä ja minä Suomen Pohjois-Haagasta, eli ei ole itsestään selvää, että päädyimme tekemään jotain yhdessä."
ellauri258.html on line 138: Teidän outo kimppanne todistaa, että eliitillä ei ole sosiaaliluokkaa. Siis turha julkkis-eliitillä, en puhu nyt pl utokratiasta.
ellauri258.html on line 227: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b9/Gowy-icaro-prado.jpg/375px-Gowy-icaro-prado.jpg" />
ellauri258.html on line 230: Oskari Onninen maxaa tupl ahinnan hylkiön sepustuxesta
ellauri258.html on line 292: Kori Hatakainen oli vuosituhannen vaihteen uhoilevan mieslaahuxen runoilija ja tunteiden työntötulkki. Sen haave oli tämmöinen apl arinvärinen Toyota Corolla, joita vielä löytyy kaupan entisen Neuvostoliiton alueelta. Samanikäinen kuin Wokun uudempi Anger Over. Klassikko (1997) oli Korin ensimmäinen menestysteos. Juoxuhaudantie on vlta 2004. Molemmista on tehty elokuvaversiot. Kori on muotopuhdas nuivelo, sama oli sillä alla Corolla tai Rolfa Aameo, se ajattelee, kirjoittaa ja virnuilee kuin aito väärentämätön persu. Vähän vähemmän totaalinen turvelo ex-mainosmies kuin porsasmainen Juri Turvo, mutta ei paljon vähemmän.
ellauri258.html on line 321: pl/wp-content/upl oads/2012/08/Baba-Jaga.jpg" />
ellauri258.html on line 473: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/be/Sami_Storehouse.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri258.html on line 529: Venäläinen noita-akka esiintyy paitsi venäläisissä kansantarinoissa, myös niiden innoittamissa kirjoissa, elokuvissa, kuvataiteessa, musiikkiteoksissa ja sarjakuvissa. Modest Musorgski sävelsi osan teoksestaan Näyttelykuvia Viktor Hartmannin piirrokseen Baba Jaga. Eduard Uspenskin lastenkirja Alas taikavirtaa (Vniz po volšebnoi reke 1971, suom. Martti Anhava 1980) perustuu venäläisiin eroottisiin kansantarinoihin ja siinä seikkailee Baba Jagan hahmo, vaikkakin eri nimellä, el Zorron nimellä, pl us 17-kesäisiä neitokaisia. Guido Crepax piirsi Baba Yaga -teemaisia Valentina-sarjakuvia, joiden pohjalta Corrado Farina ohjasi vuonna 1973 Baba Yaga -nimisen elokuvan, joka oli täysi floppi. Myös Neil Gaifman on saanut noidasta innoitusta sarjakuviinsa. Baba Jaga esiintyy ainakin Gaifmanin käsikirjoittaman Books of Magic -sarjan kolmannessa osassa, joka on suomeksi julkaistu Magic Fantasy -lehden toisessa numerossa (Egmont-kustannus 2002, ISBN 951-876-928-1). Lisäksi noita esittää sivuosaa Mike Mignolan Hellboy-sarjakuvissa. Baba Jagaan perustuva hahmo esiintyy myös Patricia A. McKillipin romaanissa Serren metsissä. Fantasiakirjailija Naomi Novik on maininnut erääksi innoituksen lähteekseen isoäitinsä kertomat Baba Jaga -tarinat, ja Novikin romaani Uprooted (2015) kirjoittaa Baba Jagan hahmoa uudelleen tuoreesta näkökulmasta. The Witcher -pelisarjassa on Baba Jagaan perustava hahmo. Lumikin ja noin 7 knääpiön noita on ilmetty Baba Jaga.
ellauri258.html on line 550: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f0/Baba-Yaga_Lubok1.jpg/765px-Baba-Yaga_Lubok1.jpg" />
ellauri258.html on line 576: VIDEO
ellauri258.html on line 748: VIDEO
ellauri260.html on line 39: In pirsona pirsonalmente play:none">Perseilyä
ellauri260.html on line 40: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/ad/Eucken-im-Alter.png" width="100%" />
ellauri260.html on line 177: En philosophie, parler d'être humain, en lieu et pl ace du terme générique d'« homme », c'est emprunter la voie qui tente de répondre à « la question centrale en toute anthropologie telle qu'elle a été formulée par Emmanuel Kant, dans le sens où il se la posait, « Qu'est-ce que l'homme ? » « Was ist der Mensch? « Ach, Mensch, sanoivat saxalaiset turistit kun Aavasaxalla juhannuxena satoi lunta. Heidegger écrivait die Geschichte des Seins (la histoire des seins). Aber er war ein Naziteufel. Dans l'esprit de la philosophie kantienne, l'homme doit être vu comme une fin en soi et non comme un moyen, comme les autres animaux. Jacques Maritain a été avant tout un immense philosophe catholique, l'un de ceux qui a le pl us contribué à faire revivre saint Thomas d'Aquin et son cheval.
ellauri260.html on line 189: No ei läppä läppä. Perehdytäämpä Rudolfiin vähän tarkemmin. Kaveri on erehdyttävästi erään Kouvolassa uraa tehneen emerituspiispan näköinen. Siitä pl ussa.
ellauri260.html on line 203: Der Erfurter Parteitag wurde vom 14. Oktober bis 20. Oktober 1891 von der Sozialdemokratischen Partei Deutschlands (SPD) im Erfurter Kaisersaal abgehalten. Das hier verabschiedete Programm wird Erfurter Programm genannt. Das als Erfurter Programm bekannt gewordene Parteiprogramm fand nach den reformistischen Ansätzen des Gothaer Programms (1875) in Teilen wieder zur marxistischen Theorie und Lehre zurück und kehrte von den Lasalle'schen Inhalten des Gothaer Programms vollständig ab. So erklärte Karl Kautsky selbst, er habe für den theoretischen Part Teile von Marx' Kapital zusammengefasst. Die von ihm erwähnten Teile beziehen sich höchstwahrscheinlich auf den Abschnitt Geschichtliche Tendenzen der kapitalistischen Akkumulation. Im krassen Gegensatz zu Marx enthielt das Programm jedoch keine expl iziten Forderungen nach einer proletarischen Revolution.
ellauri260.html on line 207: Gustav Teichmüller (November 19, 1832 – May 22, 1888) is considered a philosopher of the idealist school and a founder of Russian personalism. His ideas were shaped by his teachers Lotze and J. F. Herbart, who in turn were influenced by G. W. von Leibniz. Some scholars describe Teichmüller's personalism as a version of neo-Leibnizianism. His doctrines have also been referred to as constituting a variant of Christian personalism that is in opposition to both positivism and evolutionism as well as traditional Platonism. Teichmüller's philosophy has influenced Nietzsche and this link has been expl ored by scholars such as Hermann Nohl, who traced Teichmüller's Die wirkliche und die scheinbare Welt, 1882, as the source of the latter's perspectivism. Teichmüller also influenced the Russian thinkers A. A. Kozlov, I.F. Oze, and E. A. Bobrov. Teichmüller nai virolaisen maanomistajan tyttären ja tapettuaan sen 20-vuotiaana lapsivuoteeseen, sen siskon, ja kuoli lopulta ize Tartossa pyylevänä patruunana.
ellauri260.html on line 223: Rudin tiivistetty maailmanhistoria teoxen Socialism: an analysis alussa on lepertelevästä tyylistään huolimatta pääpiirteissään oikea. 1700-luvulla alkoi teollinen vallankumous jonka siivellä tuli humanismi ja tiedeuskovaisuus ja porvarillinen vallankumous. Kaikki muut vallankumouxet on menneet ennen pitkää perseelleen, mutta kökkäreitä ei mikään näytä pysäyttävän. "Man," says Herder, " has no nobler word to appl y to himself than what he himself is: Termitaffe." Rudin kirjan anglosaxinsi Joe McCabe, brittien Timo Airaxinen, ateisti skeptikko ja izeoikeutettu eetikko, mutta silti punastumaton porvari. Timo on tosin Joosea selkeästi läskimpi.
ellauri260.html on line 227: But now let us return to the problem! "Vapauden ongelma", no less! The problem of the hard struggle for life. The first improvement that individuals obtained in this regard was when they came together in social groups, or teams. They now had some protection against both the terrors of nature and the menace of their enemies, other moneky teams. It was religions which first inspired them with a sense of task and duty ; and gradually religion and morality, especially morality in its social aspect, entered into close combination and compl eted each other.
ellauri260.html on line 229: Adam Smith's picture of laissez-faire was thoroughly optimistic. In the unrestricted competition of individuals and nations Smith saw an immeasurable gain in freedom and power. The interests of all seemed to him to unite in a compl ete harmony, and to guarantee a steady progress of the whole. He thought of the whole as well as the individuals, but the entire collective condition seemed to him to be best promoted when it was left to the activities of the most deserving individuals. While earlier ages had talked of a religious, scientific, or artistic type of life, we now have, added to these, if not pl aced higher than they, an economic type. (Eikös kauppiassääty ollut mukana myös hindujen luonnetyypeissä? Tosin ei kärjessä kuten Smithillä, Intiassa siellä rellestivät brahmiinit.)
ellauri260.html on line 231: German philosophy did a great deal by way of deepening the ideas of men. In particular its starting from the whole instead of the individual, and its idea of movement advancing in virtue of its own forces, had a great influence on every section of social life. But the economic problem, and on this account the general social movement was directed by Lassalle, and still more by Marx, into far too narrow a path, and the Socialist ideal was conceived in too partisan a sense. The chief aim was to bring about a collective ownership of the means of production and " socialise " all property, and to recognise in the class-war a lever for the over- throw of the existing political conditions. It was thus that the Socialist movement captured the thoughts and sentiments of great masses of peopl e.
ellauri260.html on line 240: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/40/Arbeiterbew.jpg/580px-Arbeiterbew.jpg" />
ellauri260.html on line 266: We have an experiment on the grandest possible lines in humanity and conducted by it. It puts a decisive question, and it demands either Yes or No. It is only the experience of the collective life that can show whether the answer which Socialism gives meets the whole reality of human nature ; for here it is not simpl y a question of mere theories and types of life, however well they may be constructed, but of actual vital developments.
ellauri260.html on line 270: The further course of this essay will show that a sympathetic study does not impl y assent, but we must insist that to condemn a thing without understanding it is useless. On the pl us side, the ancient truth, that man is a social animal (£,(oov ttoXltlkov, animal sociale, termiittiapina), is now for the first time fully appreciated. On the minus side, 'Good' is now merely something that promotes the good of society ; it coincides with "useful" in the social sense. "True" is what has results in the social order and ensures its assent. There is no longer any room for the old conceptions of things that are good and true in themselves!
ellauri260.html on line 286: Religion created a pl ace in which antagonisms disappeared — but it saw no injustice in inequality. In this it was moved by its confident expectation of happiness in the next world, in which there would be no distinctions ; in fact, the poor and oppressed seemed to be entitled to the highest pl aces. Modern Socialism, however, finds no consolation in that doctrine. It is not satisfied with an equality in hope and expectation.
ellauri260.html on line 290: French Revolution declared that all men were equal, but it made equality consist essentially in awarding the same formal rights to every individual, including the right to develop by his own powers ; the actual inequality of individuals was not disputed. But the idea in its positive form demanded the compl ete and unreserved equality of all individuals. All inequality it regarded as unjust, as a mere consequence of external circum- stances, especially property and education. It was to be abolished by every possible means, and an absolute equality was to be established. During the French Revolution the Gironde held the negative, the Mountain the positive, conception of equality. The final issue of the positive movement was pure Communism (Babeuf). It was soon forcibly suppressed.
ellauri260.html on line 292: As a man derives his importance from the fact that he belongs to humanity, all division into classes must cease. The ideal is a class-less social order. This leads to a determination to lessen the differences between men as much as possible, if not to obliterate them altogether. This is done in the life of the State, in education, and in the suffrage. The idea of equality becomes a superior standard of value. It compels us to avoid everything that pl aces one man above another, and so lowers a man, not only in the sight of others, but in his own estimation.
ellauri260.html on line 298: it was left to Socialism to devote its whole strength to the problem and to repl ace philanthropy by civic and national institutions.
ellauri260.html on line 306: Under the lead of factory technology, the individual worker became defenceless, as its vast industrial aggregations robbed him of his independence, while capital obtained an appalling power and forced him to serve the designs of others. He became simpl y a piece of merchandise, the value of which was settled by the market. Thus the race drifted into a sharp antithesis of " labour and capital," and the two soon proved irreconcilable enemies.
ellauri260.html on line 316: During early Christians, the teaching of Aristotle remained the chief guide, and his attack upon usury was transpl anted into Christian soil by Lactantius. The chief concern was now the soul ; material possessions were deemed to be of much inferior value. There was much in this (the ban on usury) that restricted and caused a decay of economic life. It was divided into particular transactions which had no common aim. Labour was confined within narrow channels, and had very limited aims, so that production on a large scale ceased, and great wealth became impossible. Oh fuck. The mainspring of trade was individual covetousness, and this was enough of itself to restrict the full recognition of economic activity all through the middle ages.
ellauri260.html on line 351: Socialism wants to create a structure which is superior to the individuals, and all its wishes and hopes are centred in this, but what it constructs can never be more than a bringing together of separate elements without any inner connection. It thus comes to be divided in its own body. Its ideal of the whole demands a world of action, and puts in on the lines of self-direction and spirit ; but in its actual development it imitates the mere contiguity of the material world and is bound up with it. The consequence is that it contains several different ideals of life which are not reconciled with each other. Even the happiness it offers is marred by this division. The whole body is to be as happy as possible ; but what is the nature of the happiness if in the end it means merely the welfare of individuals, if it does not evolve a realm of goodness and truth out of the turmoil of interests and enable human nature to participate in it ? Quantity, it seems, is to repl ace quality ; but is that done so easily ? Do we not find ourselves in entirely different worlds ? Socialism wants a community, but can only attain a comradeship. It can find stones for the building and stimulate peopl e to work ; but it cannot either design or create the entire structure.
ellauri260.html on line 378: Inward compulsion, the inner joy and upl ift, the power of self-preservation, so that the soul be moved to grasp it, and turn it into original and constructive activity, that sufficiently rouses man from his lethargy and stagnation. It pl aces before the soul no inexorable " Either — Or."
ellauri260.html on line 382: There is, in fact, to-day over wide areas of life a positive dislike of man, a taedium generis humani, as it was called in the last days of the ancient world. We have at one and the same time the evil of overpopulation, the concentration of men in cities, the economic struggle, and so on. We have not space enough. One man is the enemy of another. Above all our particular questions we feel the power over men of the trivial, the common, the evil. The idea of Superman Tattoo occurred to some ; but can thought alone get over realities and their power ? So the human problem finds us involved in a terrible compl ication, and the Socialist ideal cannot extricate us. The situation would be hopeless if there were not higher forces working in man, making more of him, unsealing old and new springs of life to him. At present, however, we are merely searching, but I bet I am on the right track here.
ellauri260.html on line 388: As Sir J. G. Frazer says : " Only a legislation which is in harmony with a nation's past has the power to build up a nation's future. . . . There must be in every law, as in every pl ant, an element of the past."
ellauri260.html on line 392: Frazer is commonly interpreted as an atheist in light of his criticism of Christianity and especially Roman Catholicism in The Golden Bough. However, his later writings and unpublished materials suggest an ambivalent illicit relationship with Neopl atonism and Hermeticism.
ellauri260.html on line 441: Se Rudin pointti on kyllä näppärä että jos vaan taloudelliset olot tekee apinoista pahoja kuin rapukarkit, miten ne sitten päätyivät näihin oloihin in the first pl ace? No ehkä se oli joku slippery slope, niinkuin kun narkit vähitellen vaipuu yhä väkevämpiin mömmöihin. Vaikka kyllä apinat on apinoita vaikka niitä voissa paistaisi, ei mikään voi estää niitä toimimasta enimmäxeen oman ituradan edun mukaisesti, se on niillä ihan geeneissä. Joskus hyvää joskus pahaa - ankat! Aina uutta juonta sahaa - ankat!
ellauri262.html on line 39: Till We Have Faeces play:none">Fanzua
ellauri262.html on line 67: Minkä takia toi yxi tukallinen pienipää on jäänyt haaviin? Ehkä silläkin on tupee? No ei. Se on Former Chicago Bears Matt Mayberry to Support Bike Bald Charity Fun ... Matthew Mayberry (born August 6, 1987) is a former American football linebacker for the Indiana Hoosiers of the NCAA and Chicago Bears of the NFL. He is now a keynote speaker and business consultant on the topics of leadership, peak performance, culture, and teamwork. So "why the name?" Bike Bald Group was founded in 2004 by a bald multipl e time cancer survivor who was taught to fight even on the toughest days, while never forgetting those that helped along the way.
ellauri262.html on line 80: After his literary success, MacDonald went on to do a lecture tour in the United States in 1872–1873, after being invited to do so by a lecture company, the Boston Lyceum Bureau. On the tour, MacDonald lectured about other poets such as Robert Burns, Shakespeare, and Tom Hood. He performed this lecture to great acclaim, speaking in Boston to crowds in the neighbourhood of three thousand peopl e. CS Lewis wrote admiringly:
ellauri262.html on line 84: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/86/Rev._Charles_Lutwidge_Dodgson%2C_%27Lewis_Carroll%27_-_%27Mary_J._MacDonald_dreaming_of_her_father_%28George_MacDonald%29_and_brother_Ronald%27_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg/440px-Rev._Charles_Lutwidge_Dodgson%2C_%27Lewis_Carroll%27_-_%27Mary_J._MacDonald_dreaming_of_her_father_%28George_MacDonald%29_and_brother_Ronald%27_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg" />
ellauri262.html on line 85: George MacDonald with son Ronald MacDonald (right) and daughter Mary (left) in 1864. Ronald subsequently became famous as a pl astic figure. Mary is dreaming of his father's you-know-what. Photograph by Lewis Carroll.
ellauri262.html on line 91: Jopa Mark Twain, joka alun perin ei pitänyt MacDonaldista, ystävystyi hänen kanssaan, ja on todisteita siitä, että hän vaikutti Twainiin. Kristitty kirjailija Oswald Chambers kirjoitti Christian Discipl ines -kirjassaan, että "se on silmiinpistävä osoitus nykyajan lukuyleisön trendistä ja pinnallisuudesta, että George MacDonaldin kirjoja on laiminlyöty". Niinpä.
ellauri262.html on line 103: ploads/06b-Lewis-bust.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri262.html on line 106: ploads/09-Lewis-Pen.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri262.html on line 109: ploads/23-Tolkien-pen.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri262.html on line 112: ploads/10-Lewis-teapot.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri262.html on line 115: ploads/29-Chesterton-books.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri262.html on line 118: ploads/28-Dorothy-Sayers-glasses.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri262.html on line 125: ploads/30-Lewis-baby.jpg" height="200px" style="transform: rotate(-90deg)" />
ellauri262.html on line 126: ploads/31-Chesterton.jpg" height="200px" style="transform: rotate(-90deg)" />
ellauri262.html on line 127: ploads/32-Baby-Tolkien.jpg" height="200px" style="transform: rotate(-90deg)" />
ellauri262.html on line 135: ploads/2009/08/2357.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri262.html on line 136: Jackie before stapl ing and after being unstapl ed
ellauri262.html on line 138: Jackie stapl ed on the cross
ellauri262.html on line 140: Clive Stapl es Lewis, FBA (29 November 1898 – 22 November 1963) was a British writer and Anglican lay theologian. He held academic positions in English literature at both Oxford University (Magdalen College, 1925–1954) and Cambridge University (Magdalene College, 1954–1963). He is best known as the author of The Chronicles of Narnia, but he is also noted for his other works of fiction, such as The Screwtape Letters and The Space Trilogy, and for his non-fiction Christian apologetics, including Mere Christianity, Miracles, and The Problem of Pain.
ellauri262.html on line 146: Lewis's mother was Florence Augusta Lewis née Hamilton (1862–1908), known as Flora, the daughter of Thomas Hamilton, a Church of Ireland priest, and the great-granddaughter of both Bishop Hugh Hamilton and John Stapl es. Lewis had an elder brother, Warren Hamilton Lewis (known as "Warnie"). He was baptized on 29 January 1899 by his maternal grandfather in St Mark's Church, Dundela. Jacksie's dad was a second generation immigrant from Wales.
ellauri262.html on line 171: Lewis lived with and cared for Moore until she was hospitalized in the late 1940s. He routinely introduced her as his mother, referred to her as such in letters, and developed a deepl y affectionate friendship with her. Lewis's own mother had died when he was a child, while his father was distant, demanding, and eccentric.
ellauri262.html on line 184: MacDonald rejected the doctrine of penal substitutionary atonement as developed by John Calvin, which argues that Christ has taken the pl ace of sinners and is punished by the wrath of God in their pl ace, believing that in turn it raised serious questions about the character and nature of God.[citation needed] Instead, he taught that Christ had come to save peopl e from their sins, and not from a Divine penalty for their sins: the problem was not the need to appease a wrathful God, but the disease of cosmic evil itself.[citation needed] MacDonald frequently described the atonement in terms similar to the Christus Victor theory.
ellauri262.html on line 186: Christus Victor is a book by Gustaf Aulén published in English in 1931, presenting a study of theories of atonement in Christianity. The original Swedish title is Den kristna försoningstanken ("The Christian Idea of the Atonement") published in 1930. Aulén reinterpreted the classic ransom theory of atonement, which says that Christ's death is a ransom to the powers of evil, which had held humankind in their dominion. It is a model of the atonement that is dated to the Church Fathers, and it was the dominant theory of atonement for a thousand years, until Anselm Panda of Canterbury suppl anted it in the West with his satisfaction theory of atonement. So that the baddies in the story were Sauron and the goblins and orcs of Mordor, not God as angry Scrooge McDuck coming for his dues.
ellauri262.html on line 189: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d3/George_and_Louisa_MacDonald_on_their_50th_anniversary.jpg/220px-George_and_Louisa_MacDonald_on_their_50th_anniversary.jpg" />
ellauri262.html on line 193: Dyson preferred talk at Inklings meetings to readings. He had a distaste for J. R. R. Tolkien's The Lord of the Rings and compl ained loudly at its readings. Eventually Tolkien gave up reading to the group altogether. He wrote a survey of contemporary English literature with a bibliography by Professor John Butt.
ellauri262.html on line 200: The youthful Alistair Cooke was less impressed, and in 1944 described "the alarming vogue of Mr. C.S. Lewis" as an exampl e of how wartime tends to "spawn so many quack religions and Messiahs". The broadcasts were anthologized in Mere Christianity.
ellauri262.html on line 211: Media coverage of Lewis's death was almost compl etely overshadowed by news of the assassination of John F. Kennedy, which occurred on the same day (approximately 55 minutes following Lewis's collapse), as did the death of English writer Aldous Huxley, author of Brave New World.
ellauri262.html on line 215: In addition to his scholarly work, Lewis wrote several popular novels, including the science fiction Space Trilogy for adults and the Narnia fantasies for children. Most deal impl icitly with Christian themes such as sin, humanity's fall from grace, and redemption.
ellauri262.html on line 217: The Space Trilogy (also called the Cosmic Trilogy or Ransom Trilogy) dealt with what Lewis saw as the dehumanizing trends in contemporary science fiction. The first book, Out of the Silent Planet, was apparently written following a conversation with his friend J. R. R. Tolkien about these trends. Lewis agreed to write a "space travel" story and Tolkien a "time travel" one, but Tolkien never compl eted "The Lost Road", linking his Middle-earth to the modern world. Lewis's main character Elwin Ransom is based in part on Tolkien, a fact to which Tolkien alludes in his letters.
ellauri262.html on line 219: The second novel, Perelandra, depicts a new Garden of Eden on the pl anet Venus, a new Adam and Eve, and a new "serpent figure" to tempt Eve. The story can be seen as an account of what might have happened if the terrestrial Adam had defeated the serpent and avoided the Fall of Man, with Ransom intervening in the novel to "ransom" the new Adam and Eve from the deceptions of the enemy. The third novel, That Hideous Strength, develops the theme of nihilistic science threatening traditional human values, embodied in Arthurian legend.
ellauri262.html on line 221: The Chronicles of Narnia, considered a classic of children's literature, is a series of seven fantasy novels. Written between 1949 and 1954 and illustrated by Pauline Baynes, the series is Lewis's most popular work, having sold over 100 million copies in 41 languages (Kelly 2006) (Guthmann 2005). It has been adapted several times, compl ete or in part, for radio, television, stage and cinema.
ellauri262.html on line 226: William Blake's concept of The Marriage of Heaven and Hell, Lewis found a "disastrous error". He also wrote The Four Loves, which rhetorically expl ains nine categories of love: an, auf, hinter, in, neben, über, unter, vor, zwischen.
ellauri262.html on line 229: ploads/2015/03/JRR-Tolkien15.jpg?fit=760%2C1076&ssl=1" width="20%" />
ellauri262.html on line 311: The presence of sexuality in The Lord of the Rings, a bestselling fantasy novel by J. R. R. Tolkien, has been debated, as it is somewhat unobtrusive. However, love and marriage appear in the form of the warm relationship between the hobbits Sam Gamgee and Rosie Cotton; the unreturned feelings of Éowyn for Aragorn, followed by her falling in love with Faramir, and marrying him; and Aragorn's love for Arwen, described in an appendix rather than in the main text, as "The Tale of Aragorn and Arwen". Multipl e scholars have noted the symbolism of the monstrous female spider Shelob. Interest has been concentrated, too, on the officer-batman-inspired same-sex relationship of Frodo and his gardener Sam as they travel together on the dangerous quest to destroy the Ring. Scholars and commentators have interpreted the relationship in different ways, from close but not necessarily homosexual to pl ainly homoerotic, or as an idealised heroic friendship.
ellauri262.html on line 317: Commentators have remarked on the apparent lack of sexuality in The Lord of the Rings; the feminist and queer theory scholar Valerie Rohy notes the female novelist A. S. Byatt's remark that "part of the reason I read Tolkien when I'm ill is that there is an almost total absence of sexuality in his world, which is restful"; the Tolkien scholar Tom Shippey wrote that "there is not enough awareness of sexuality" in the work; and the novelist and critic Adam Mars-Jones stated that "above all, sexuality [is] what is absent from the [work's] vision". Rohy comments that it is easy to see why they might say this; in the epic tradition, Tolkien "abandons courtship when battle looms, apparently sublimating sexuality to the greater quest". She accepts that there are three romances leading to weddings in the tale, those of Aragorn and Arwen, Éowyn and Faramir, and Sam and Rosie, but points out that their love stories are mainly external to the main narrative about the Ring, and that their beginnings are basically not shown: they simpl y appear as marriages.
ellauri262.html on line 319: The scholar Patrick Curry, defending Tolkien against the feminist scholar Catherine R. Stimpson's charge that "Tolkien is irritatingly, blandly, traditionally masculine....He makes his women characters, no matter what their rank, the most hackneyed of stereotypes. They are either beautiful and distant, simpl y distant, or simpl y simpl e", comments that "it is tempting to repl y, guilty as charged", agreeing that Tolkien is "paternalistic", though he objects that Galadriel and Éowyn have more to them than Stimpson alleges.
ellauri262.html on line 325: The scholar of children's literature Zoë Jaques writes that Shelob is the "embodiment of monstrous maternity"; Sam's battle with Shelob could be interpreted as a "masculine rite of passage" where a smaller, weaker male penetrates and escapes the vast female body and her malicious intent. The feminist scholar Brenda Partridge described the hobbits' protracted struggle with Shelob as rife with sexual symbolism. She writes that Tolkien derived Shelob from multipl e myths: Sigurd killing Fafnir the dragon; Theseus killing the Minotaur; Ariadne and the spider; and Milton's Sin in Paradise Lost. The result is to depict the woman as a threat, with impl icit overtones of sexuality.
ellauri262.html on line 401: The poet W. H. Auden and the philosopher Ludwig Wittgenstein were notable critics of her novels. A savage attack on Sayers's writing ability came from the American critic Edmund Wilson, in a well-known 1945 article in The New Yorker called "Who Cares Who Killed Roger Ackroyd?" He briefly writes about her novel The Nine Tailors, saying "I declare that it seems to me one of the dullest books I have ever encountered in any field." Wilson continues "I had often heard peopl e say that Dorothy Sayers wrote well ... but, really, she does not write very well: it is simpl y that she is more consciously literary than most of the other detective-story writers and that she thus attracts attention in a field which is mostly on a sub-literary level."
ellauri262.html on line 403: The academic critic Q. D. Leavis criticises Sayers in more specific terms in a review of Gaudy Night and Busman's Honeymoon, published in the critical journal Scrutiny, saying her fiction is "popular and romantic while pretending to realism." Leavis argues that Sayers presents academic life as "sound and sincere because it is scholarly," a pl ace of "invulnerable standards of taste charging the charmed atmosphere". But, Leavis says, this is unrealistic: "If such a world ever existed, and I should be surprised to hear as much, it does no longer, and to give substance to a lie or to perpetuate a dead myth is to do no one any service really." Leavis comments that "only best-seller novelists could have such illusions about human nature."
ellauri262.html on line 405: The critic Sean Latham has defended Sayers, arguing that Wilson and Leavis simpl y objected to a detective story writer having pretensions beyond what they saw as her role of popular culture "hack". Latham says that, in their eyes, "Sayers' primary crime lay in her attempt to transform the detective novel into something other than an ephemeral bit of popular culture".
ellauri262.html on line 407: Sayers, an only child, was born on 13 June 1893 at the Headmaster's House on Brewer Street in Oxford. She was the daughter of Helen Mary Leigh and her husband, the Rev. Henry Sayers. Her mother was a daughter of Frederick Leigh, a solicitor whose family roots were in the landed gentry in the Isle of Wight, and had been born at "The Chestnuts", Millbrook, Hampshire. Her father, originally from Littlehampton, West Sussex, was a chapl ain of Christ Church Cathedral, Oxford, and headmaster of Christ Church Cathedral School.
ellauri262.html on line 413: Sayers's longest empl oyment was from 1922 to 1931 as a copywriter at an advertising agency.
ellauri262.html on line 414: As an advertiser, Sayers's collaboration with artist John Gilroy resulted in "The Mustard Club" for Colman's Mustard and the Guinness "Zoo" advertisements, variations of which still appear today. One exampl e was the Toucan, his bill arching under a glass of Guinness, with Sayers's jingle:
ellauri262.html on line 421: Sayers is also credited with coining the slogan "It pays to advertise!" Sayers's translation of the Divine Comedy includes extensive notes at the end of each canto, expl aining the theological meaning of what she calls "a great Christian allegory.".
ellauri262.html on line 425: In 1920 Sayers entered into a passionate though unconsummated romance with Jewish Russian émigré and Imagist poet John Cournos, who moved in London literary circles with Ezra Pound and his contemporaries. Sayers did not consummate her relationship with him unmarried, due to her religious beliefs. Cournos disdained monogamy and marriage, did not want children and was dedicated to free love.[53] He also considered crime writing, which Sayers had started, to be low brow, though he assisted her with aspects of publication.[54] Within two years their relationship had broken up when he insisted on consummation with birth control. Returning to New York, he soon married a crime writer who had two children. This left Sayers embittered that he had not held to his own principl es, feeling that he had been testing her, pushing her to sacrifice her own beliefs in submission to his own. He later confessed that he would have happily married Sayers if she had submitted to his sexual demands. After a period of heated correspondence, they concluded with more amicable missives after she met her future husband.
ellauri262.html on line 431: Tony suspected mom's maternity since his youth but had proof only when he obtained his birth certificate appl ying for a passport. It is not known if he ever spoke to Dotty about the fact.
ellauri262.html on line 433: After publishing her first two detective novels, Sayers married Captain Oswald Atherton "Mac" Fleming, a Scottish journalist whose professional name was "Atherton Fleming". The wedding took pl ace on 13 April 1926 (Dot was 33 and Mac 45) at Holborn Register Office, London. Fleming was divorced with two daughters.
ellauri262.html on line 448: ploads/2013/02/C.-S.-Lewis-Pipe.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri262.html on line 475: Actual historical events like Numinous stapl ing Aslan on the cross to get even.
ellauri262.html on line 478: Lewis states the problem of pain again in a simpl er way: "If God were good, He would wish to make His creatures perfectly happy, and if God were almighty, He would be able to do what he wished. But the creatures are not happy. Therefore, God lacks either goodness, or power, or both."[3] Lewis says that if the popular meanings attached to the words are the best or only possible then the problem is unanswerable. The possibility of answering it depends on understanding the words 'good,' 'almighty,' and 'happy' in a bigger sense.
ellauri262.html on line 486: Lewis starts off by asking why humans need so much castigation. Immediately he shares the Christian answer that humans have used free will to become very bad. Remember the clandestine fucking behind the appl e tree! Though it wasn't the fucking as such but disobedience. The only guy that is allowed to be proud in Eden is its owner. Fucking with the snake was just a test. You FAILED! Put your pants on! Free will was not meant for you to do what you want, but to obey so it hurts! Misguided fucking made man an animal, the rest is biology. Man, as a species, spoiled his pants.
ellauri262.html on line 494: While there is a social conscious and corporate guilt, don’t let the idea distract you from your own "old-fashioned guilts" that have nothing to do with the ‘system’. Often, it’s an excuse for evading the real issue. Once we’ve learned of our individual corruption, we can go on to think about corporate guilt. If we ever get that far, the pl ank in our own eye is hard to extricate. (Luke 6:41-42)
ellauri262.html on line 510: Lewis then says that he doesn’t believe in the doctrine of Total Depravity on logical and experiential grounds. Also, shame is of value, not as an emotion but for the insight that it provides. He shares how he notices that the more a man hollers the more fully aware he is of his vileness. To underline this point Clive says probably the most famous line from this book: "God whispers to us in our pl easures, speaks in our conscience, but shouts in our pain: it is His megaphone to rouse the deaf."
ellauri262.html on line 540: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/c/c2/Thescrewtapeletters.jpg" />
ellauri262.html on line 616: Mr Cleese said: “Life of Brian was never an attack on religion, which is what some peopl e seem to pretend it was.
ellauri262.html on line 617: “It was an attack on how peopl e hold religious beliefs, an attack on what I would call intolerance and narrow mindedness.”
ellauri263.html on line 38: Shadows on the Hudson Part 1 play:none">Pyllistelyä
ellauri263.html on line 77: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2c/Filippino_Lippi_016.jpg/1280px-Filippino_Lippi_016.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri263.html on line 282: Tisha B'Av (Hebrew: תִּשְׁעָה בְּאָב[a] Tīšʿā Bəʾāv; IPA: [tiʃʕa beˈʔav] (listen), lit. 'the ninth of Av') is an annual fast day in Judaism, on which a number of disasters in Jewish history occurred, primarily the destruction of both Solomon's Templ e by the Neo-Babylonian Empire and the Second Templ e by the Roman Empire in Jerusalem.
ellauri263.html on line 292: Mourning the destruction of the ancient Templ es and Jerusalem,
ellauri263.html on line 293: and other major calamities which have befallen the Jewish peopl e.
ellauri263.html on line 295: Fasting, mourning, prayer, abstaining from physical pl easures
ellauri263.html on line 299: The observance of the day includes five prohibitions, most notable of which is a 25-hour fast. The Book of Lamentations, which mourns the destruction of Jerusalem, is read in the synagogue, followed by the recitation of kinnot, liturgical dirges that lament the loss of the Templ es and Jerusalem. As the day has become associated with remembrance of other major calamities which have befallen the Jewish peopl e, some kinnot also recall events such as the murder of the Ten Martyrs by the Romans, expulsions from England, Spain and elsewhere, massacres of numerous medieval Jewish communities during the Crusades, and the Holocaust.
ellauri263.html on line 306: The First Templ e built by King Solomon was destroyed by Nebuchadnezzar in 586 BCE, and the population of the Kingdom of Judah was sent into the Babylonian exile. According to the Bible, the First Templ e's destruction began on the 7th of Av (2 Kings 25:8) and continued until the 10th (Jeremiah 52:12). According to the Talmud, the actual destruction of the Templ e began on the Ninth of Av, and it continued to burn throughout the Tenth of Av.
ellauri263.html on line 308: The Second Templ e built by Ezra and Nehemiah was destroyed by the Romans in 70 CE, scattering the peopl e of Judea and commencing the Jewish exile from the Holy Land.
ellauri263.html on line 312: Following the Bar Kokhba revolt, Roman commander Quintus Tineius Rufus pl owed the site of the Templ e in Jerusalem and the surrounding area, in 135 CE.
ellauri263.html on line 335: Various Modern Orthodox and Conservative rabbits have proposed amending Nachem, as its wording no longer reflects the existence of a rebuilt Jerusalem under Israeli sovereignty. Chief Rabbit Shlomo Goren, for exampl e, issued a revised wording of the prayer and Rabbit Hayim David HaLevi proposed putting the prayer's verbs relating to the Templ e's destruction into the past tense. However, such proposals have not been widely adopted. Following the Six-Day War, the national religious community viewed Israel's territorial conquests with almost messianic overtones. The conquest of geographical areas with immense religious significance, including Jerusalem, the Western Wall, and the Templ e Mount, was seen as portentous; however, only the full rebuilding of the Templ e would engender enough reason to cease observing the day as one of mourning and transform it into a day of joy instead. The re-occupation of the Gaza strip is surely a source of joy, as well as annihilating philistines of the West Bank.
ellauri263.html on line 343: No appl ication of creams or oils;
ellauri263.html on line 350: No wearing of leather shoes is observed almost universally by now thanx to Adidas, Nike, and other pl astic shoes. Study of the Torah is forbidden on Tisha B'Av as it is considered an enjoyable activity, except for the study of distressing texts such as the Book of Lamentations, the Book of Job, portions of Jeremiah and chapters of the Talmud that discuss the laws of mourning and those that discuss the destruction of the Templ e and boring texts such as Numbers.
ellauri263.html on line 369: Israel’s biggest TV hit series returns to our screens this week, opening with Israel’s biggest nightmare. The second series of Fauda, the political thriller about an Israeli army undercover unit, begins with a bomb expl osion at a bus stop. But it gets worse, as it turns out the attack wasn’t ordered by Hamas, but by a new menace – a returnee from Syria who has been training with Islamic State.
ellauri263.html on line 371: That’s how we’re pl unged back into Fauda, Arabic for “chaos”, Israel’s international Netflix hit, which the streaming service picked up in 2016. Released on 24 May, the series returns with its tight, testy unit of Arabic-speaking Israeli special force infiltrators who work undercover in the Palestinian West Bank to track and kill wanted terrorists.
ellauri263.html on line 373: It’s mostly in Arabic and Hebrew, but that hasn’t limited the appeal. Netflix, which has 109 million members across 190 countries, describes it as a global phenomenon – one of a string of Israeli successes, besides Yom Kippur war and the occupation of Palestine. Netflix has already commissioned a third series along with other shows from Fauda’s creators, journalist Avi Issacharoff and Lior Raz, who served in the undercover unit on which the series is based and pl ays its predictably gruff Israeli lead Doron Kavillio.
ellauri263.html on line 377: At a time when Israelis rarely seek out Palestinian viewpoints in real life, much less on TV, this may expl ain why Fauda’s creators initially struggled to find a domestic outlet for the series. (LOL!) It portrays the infiltrator unit, whose members (an all-male panel, except for one token woman for the boys to drool about) kill, torture, assault and violently threaten Palestinians in a manner that jars with any claims of moral superiority. And this second series contains more narrative mirroring. We see each side struggle with unity and discipl ine over revenge and going rogue, with causes taking precedence over family relationships, lured into a violence that creates its own momentum. Both sides are compromised, manipulative and varying degrees of unhinged.
ellauri263.html on line 389: Claims by Raz that writing the series was his real therapy, after suffering with PTSD, help locate Fauda in an Israeli genre dubbed “shooting and crying” – laments over the effect of wars on the morality and sanity of Israelis fighting them. But Fauda is different. Let’s call it “viewing while cursing”, into which category we can also pl ace the US hit series Homeland Security.
ellauri263.html on line 393: Yet both shows get you binge-watching, despite irritating pl ot holes, political sanctimony and misrepresentations of Muslims or Palestinians. It’s a bit like speed-reading a cheap thriller, ignoring the bad dialogue and badly drawn characters, along with the mounting self-loathing over the time you’re squandering, just for the sugar rush of the story’s end.
ellauri263.html on line 399: Palestinian journalist Ziyad Abul Hawa says Fauda could have started to make good on notions of balance simpl y by bringing Palestinians into the creative process. “If the writers are all Israeli, no matter how good the intentions are, they are not realistically showing what is happening in Palestinian areas. I heard they did their homework and research but still, you need a Palestinian constantly with them, telling them what’s realistic and what is not.” He adds that Arabic accents in the show bust its credibility claims within seconds.
ellauri263.html on line 401: As it is, the second series has left many feeling it missed an opportunity to show the realities of the Israeli occupation. “They did some brave stuff but it is not a mirror of realities in the West Bank,” says Stern. “It’s a shame, they could have done it and peopl e would have loved the show anyway.”
ellauri263.html on line 421: A virgin's ketuba is worth 200 (zuzim), and a widow's ketuba is worth 100 (zuzim). Arvaa mitä tarkoittaa ketuba? Väärin, se on kontrahti. The content of the ketubah is in essence a two-way contract that formalizes the various requirements by Halakha (Jewish law) of a Jewish husband vis-à-vis his wife. The Jewish husband takes upon himself in the ketubah the obligation that he will provide to his wife three major things: clothing, food and conjugal relations, and also that he will pay her a pre-specified amount of cash in the case of a divorce. The principal endowment pl edged in a ketubah is 200 zuz for a virgin, and 100 zuz otherwise (such as for a widow, a convert, or a divorced woman, etc.).
ellauri263.html on line 444: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/62/AbulrazakGurnahHebronPanel_%28cropped%29.jpg/375px-AbulrazakGurnahHebronPanel_%28cropped%29.jpg" />
ellauri263.html on line 449: Hebron is considered one of the oldest cities in the Levant. According to the Bible, Abraham settled in Hebron and bought the Cave of the Patriarchs as a burial pl ace for his wife Sarah. Biblical tradition holds that the patriarchs Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, along with their wives Sarah, Rebecca, and Leah, were buried in the cave. Hebron is also recognized in the Bible as the pl ace where David was anointed king of Israel. Following the Babylonian captivity, the Edomites settled in Hebron. During the first century BCE, Herod the Great built the wall which still surrounds the Cave of the Patriarchs, which later became a church, and then a mosque. With the exception of a brief Crusader control, successive Muslim dynasties ruled Hebron from the 6th century CE until the Ottoman Empire's dissolution following World War I, when the city became part of British Mandatory Palestine. A massacre in 1929 and the Arab uprising of 1936–39 led to the emigration of the Jewish community from Hebron. The 1948 Arab–Israeli War saw the entire West Bank, including Hebron, occupied and annexed by Jordan, and since the 1967 Six-Day War, the city has been under Israeli military occupation. Following Israeli occupation, Jewish presence was reestablished at the city. Since the 1997 Hebron Protocol, most of Hebron has been governed by the Palestinian National Authority.
ellauri263.html on line 470: Teosofia (kreik. theos jumala, sophia viisaus, suomeksi jumalviisaus) tarkoitti alun perin filosofista ajattelua, joka kohdistui Jumalan olemuksen selville saamiseen salaperäisellä, välittömällä näkemyksellä, ikäänkuin videolla ilman kirjoja. Tällaista teosofiaa harrastivat muun muassa uuspl atonikot, useat keskiajan mystikot, sekä uudella ajalla muun muassa Rosenkreutzin ruusuristiläiset, anglosaxit vapaamuurarit, Jakob Böhme, Franz Xaver von Baader ja Friedrich von Schelling. 1870-luvulla syntynyt moderni, useaan suuntaan hajonnut teosofia on saanut paljon vaikutteita näistä ikivanhoista saxalaisista setämiehistä sekä intialaisista uskonnoista.
ellauri263.html on line 490: Uuspl atonikot käyttivät nimitystä teosofia käsityksestään, jonka mukaan sekä henkinen että aineellinen olemassaolo oli emanaationa eli vähän niinkuin vuodatuksena syntynyt ainoasta ikiolevasta jumaluudesta. Runkkuna tai valkovuotona, teosofin omasta vaatetaustasta riippuen.
ellauri263.html on line 496: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/c/cc/Teosofia_kaavio.jpg/220px-Teosofia_kaavio.jpg" />
ellauri263.html on line 499: H. P. Blavatskyn päätyö oli teosofinen oppi, johon hiän sulautti valtavasti vaikutteita eri tahoilta. Eniten Blavatskyn ajatteluun vaikuttaneista oppisuunnista, teoksista ja auktoriteeteista voidaan mainita ainakin buddhalaisuus, Bhagavad Gita ja hindulainen tantrismi, Kabbala (erityisesti Eliphas Levi), Raamattu, Zohar ja Talmud, hermetismi, ruusuristiläisyys, gnostilaisuus, zarathustralaisuus, kaldealaiset, vapaamuurarius, spiritismi, mystiikka, Jakob Böhme ja Mestari Eckhart, alkemia ja magia, aikansa tieteellinen kirjallisuus, Robert Fludd, Paracelsus, maailman mytologiat esimerkiksi germaaninen mytologia, Popol Vuh, Ryhmä Hau ja Gilgameš (myös otteita Kalevalasta), antiikin kirkkoisät Irenaeus, Tertullianus, Origenes ja Eusebius, filosofit, etenkin Platon ja uuspl atonilaisuus, Porfyrios, Plotinos ja Ammonios Sakkas sekä historioitsijat ja monet muut antiikin kirjailijat kuten Plinius vanhempi, Ovidius, Homeros ja Josefus. Lisäksi hän väitti opiskelleensa huomattavien inkarnaatiolaamojen oppilaana Tiibetissä, Ladakhissa, Nepalissa ja Mongoliassa ja perehtyneensä muun muassa vajrayanan esoterismiin eli Kālacakrayanaan, Nepalin svābhāvikoiden oppiin ja sykretistiseen shamanismiin (puuh).
ellauri263.html on line 517: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f3/Blavatsky.007.jpg" />
ellauri263.html on line 524: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/74/Moryaportrait.jpg" />
ellauri263.html on line 549: Maatilaan liittyvä julkisuus toi hänen elämäänsä Michael Betanellyn, jonka kanssa Blavatsky avioitui 3. huhtikuuta 1875. Hän oli kuullut entisen miehensä kuolleen, vaikka näin ei ollut. Avioliitto Betanellyn kanssa kesti vain neljä kuukautta, ja ilmeisesti se oli solmittu Blavatskyn puolelta pelkästään taloudellisin syin. Hänen mukaansa eron syynä oli se, että puheistaan huolimatta Betanelly ei ollut halunnut pitää suhdetta enää pl atonisena. Samaan aikaan myös oikeuskäsittely päättyi, ja Blavatsky sai korvauksena 1146 dollaria. Blavatskyn ja Olcottin henkiset harrastukset olivat hiljalleen keränneet heidän ympärilleen muitakin kiinnostuneita, ja tämä johti viimein Teosofisen Seuran perustamiseen 17. marraskuuta 1875. Seura alkoi kuitenkin saada vihollisia spiritistien taholta, koska Blavatsky väitti, että spiritismin ilmiöt eivät olleet peräisin kuolleiden hengiltä vaan elementaaleilta, astraalisilta olioilta ja 'kuorilta'. Seuraavina kuukausina Olcott luennoi ja Blavatsky piti keskusteluiltoja New Yorkin salongissaan ja molemmat myös kirjoittivat ahkerasti.
ellauri263.html on line 589: Ihminen on mikrokosmos, ja eri pl aneettakausien kehityksellä on ihmisessä omat vastaavuutensa esimerkiksi aisteina sekä tajunnan eri tasoina ja ominaisuuksina. Ihmisessä voidaan siten erottaa seitsemän prinsiippiä, jotka ovat ātma eli Sopen villakoira, buddhi eli henkinen sielu, manaus eli inhimillinen sielu, kamala rumpa eli himo- tai tunnekeho, lingam shakiraan eli fyysisen kehon kaksoispuoli ts. astraalikeho, prawna eli elonhenkäys elävässä olennossa ja stool shakirasta eli fyysinen keho. Neljännen juurirodun aikana ihmiskunnassa oli vielä toimivana "kolmas silmä" eli henkinen näkökyky, jonka fyysinen elin on nyt surkastunut ja tunnetaan häpy- tai peräaukkona.
ellauri263.html on line 611: Hupaisaa havaita, että anglikaaninen kirkko siirtymässä hyvää vauhtia kohti blavatskylaisia kantoja. Jumalalla ei ole killuttimia, vaan se on androgyyni, tai pikemminkin muu. Blavatskyn killuttimet saattoivat olla väärässä lahkeessa, sillä kirjeessä se sanoo she is ‘lacking some-thing and the pl ace is filled with some crooked cucumber’. Kuuensaan kurkku. Olcottin mukaan se oli "she-male". Se saattoi siis olla kaxineuvoinen! Sillä oli kaxoisveli, josta on hurjan vähän puhetta. Jelena allekirjoitti kirjeensä "Jack", ihan kuin C.S.Lewis! Jossain jutussa se kuzuukin izeään Matomezäxi. Blavazkyn saatanalliset säkeet tekivät syvän vaikutuxen ainakin Aleister Crowleyhyn ja Pekka Siitoimeen.
ellauri263.html on line 617: The book is a comedy about the birth of the son of Satan and the coming of the End Times. There are attempts by the angel Aziraphale and the demon Crowley to sabotage the coming of the end times, having grown accustomed to their comfortable surroundings in England. One subpl ot features a mixup at the small country hospital on the day of birth and the growth of the Antichrist, Adam, who grows up with the wrong family, in the wrong country village. Another subpl ot concerns the summoning of the Four Horsemen of the Apocalypse, each a big personality in their own right. With Armageddon averted, Crowley and Aziraphale muse that this was God's pl an all along and speculate that the real apocalyptic conflict will be between humanity and the combined forces of Heaven and Hell. In 2003, the novel was listed at number 68 on the BBC's survey The Big Read.
ellauri263.html on line 619: Pirun nimi oli varmasti otettu tältä häiskältä, joka on jo tavattu mm. albumissa 219 thelema-nimisen huuhaauskonnon kexijänä. Se esiintyy Rehupiiklesin Sgt. Peppers-levyn kannassa. Sekin oli jonkin sortin satanisti, pl us sexuaalisesti ylimääräytynyt.
ellauri263.html on line 624: ploads/H.-P.-Blavatsky-Collected-Writings-Volume-IX.jpg" />
ellauri263.html on line 627: Almost 600 (!) biographies have been written of Blavatsky, but the details of her life, especially the years 1848–1873, remain sketchy all the same. Most of the authors have been either devoted discipl es or sharpl y critical adversaries. Some interesting and well-documented facts, however, can be determined. She was born to a noble Russian family in present-day Ukraine, married at 17, ran away only months later, traveled widely and spent time in Cairo, among many other pl aces, where she supported herself as a medium size sex doll.
ellauri263.html on line 658: Jenkki Olcott ei siitä pitänyt, eikä rupusakin vulgäärispiritualismista. Olcott railed against ‘tricky mediums, lying spirits, and revolting social theories’ in Spiritualism. He reproached spiritualism for the presence of ‘free-lovers, pantarchists, socialists, and other theorists who have fastened upon a sublime and pure faith as barnacles upon a ship’s bottom’. Blavatsky, on the other hand, focused exclusively on the upl ifting of oneself rather than others. She did not sympathize with socialism per se at all, and in her scrapbook she even wrote about Sotheran: ‘a friend of Communists
ellauri263.html on line 688: Coined by the Kerista Community in the 1970s. Possibly derived from French compère (“partner”), pl us -sion, based on an earlier use of the French compérage to denote the practice of brothers-in-law sharing wives observed among Tupi peopl e of the Brazilian Amazon.
ellauri263.html on line 690: The ideology shared by the Old Tribe was remarkably simpl e: 'Wash your own dish', 'No one belongs to anyone else', 'Kerista is freedom and love'. Baristat käytti Ouija lautaa kuten Lassi ja Leevi. Starting with a few unwritten rules in 1971 to 26 standards in 1979, the social
ellauri263.html on line 692: 1991, exampl es of which included No jealousy, no anger, no rivalry, no sexism, no ageism, no racism, no
ellauri263.html on line 693: classism, no dupl icity, no alienation, no profanity, no flippancy, social tolerance, equality, verbality, participatory democracy, accountability, conviviality, male vasectomy, ristiinsuihkiminen, graceful distancing, positive attitude toward the ‘toggle-switch’ mode of decision-making, whatever that may be.
ellauri263.html on line 695: Kerista's polyamorous sexual practice was influenced by Robert A. Heinlein's (1907-88) science-fiction novel Stranger in a Strange Land (1961), in which the Martian-raised human Michael Valentine Smith founded The Church of All Worlds, preached sexual freedom and the truth of all religions, and is martyred by narrow-minded peopl e who are not ready for freedom. Sukua myös Diskordianismille. Concordia res parvae crescunt, discordia maximae dilabuntur.
ellauri263.html on line 702: A few years ago, my partner at the time and I decided to see other peopl e. It started as a breakup but eventually it turned into something else—an open relationship filled with a lot of love and ongoing commitment to each other as we began expl oring dating and sleeping with other peopl e. It was a very new experience for both of us, but it also just made sense for us with where we both were in our lives and in our relationship.
ellauri263.html on line 706: It's about how peopl e in these types of open relationships deal with jealousy.
ellauri263.html on line 713: This ad is displ ayed using third party content and we do not control its accessibility features.
ellauri263.html on line 717: Consider how you usually feel when your partner gets a big promotion at work or accompl ishes a new fitness goal, or how you feel when your best friend tells you about a new guy they've been dating that they're really clicking with: You're genuinely, totally stoked for them, right? Fuck no, you are slightly envious, or not so slightly either. This is an instinctual feeling for most of us. Now appl y that to when your partner is having fun flirting with (or sleeping with) a new flame that's not you. Instead of sparking jealousy, it sparks earnest empathetic joy. That's compersion.
ellauri263.html on line 719: "It's joy that has nothing to do with your joy," Effy Blue, a relationship coach specializing in consensual non-monogamy, tells mindbodygreen. "It's sympathetic joy or unselfish joy, where you are joyful for the other person for things that have nothing to do with you. You're just happy for them because they're in a good pl ace, because they are experiencing joy, and you can sort of look at it from the outside and feel the same experience."
ellauri263.html on line 723: "If you sort of dive into the Buddhist teachings and down the mudita path, they will actually tell you it's the hardest virtue to master," she says. "There are a ton of mudita meditations, which is something else I recommend to peopl e."
ellauri263.html on line 725: That's an important part of this actually: Compersion doesn't often come naturally to peopl e, in large part because of the way we've been evolutionarily trained to protect our mating relationships and how today we've now organized our entire society around monogamy. That means that for many, compersion is a feeling or skill set that takes conscious practice.
ellauri263.html on line 727: Why peopl e experience jealousy
ellauri263.html on line 729: The evolutionary purpose of jealousy isn't relevant anymore: who wants to have children anyway, and by the golden rule of America "look out for N:o 1" everybody is responsible for their own welfare and happiness. We are no fucking communists, after all. Unfortunately, the emotion does still pl ay a role in our lives. Blue compares feeling jealous to having an alarm bell going off in your head.
ellauri263.html on line 731: "It's very similar to a fire alarm in your house, right? It goes off, it's loud, it's obnoxious, it's alerting to something, it has a function. And you know in a similar way, it's very disorienting," she expl ains. "In the same way, when you're triggered into feeling jealousy, it's very disorienting, and it can be very overwhelming. But ultimately, it's alerting you to something. Once you quiet the alarm, once you turn off the fire alarm, what you would normally do is sort of go around your house and figure out what's going on. … Is something actually on fire, or is it a false alarm? Same with jealousy—it's alerting you to some sort of discomfort."
ellauri263.html on line 733: Sometimes the emotional alarm is going off because something's actually wrong—your partner isn't giving you the attention or affection you need, for exampl e, or perhaps they're betraying a promise or agreement you have about your relationship, which of course makes you feel unstable or upset. Other times the alarm goes off over misperceptions or just our own insecurities. We're worried a lively conversation between our partner and an attractive stranger means that they're no longer as interested in us, that there's a chance they might be more interested in someone else, that there's a threat to the relationship. Even if none of that is true, our anxieties can get the best of us, and so jealousy is how it manifests as an emotion.
ellauri263.html on line 735: "Some peopl e have more of a disposition for jealousy," Blue adds. "It's a character trait. Just like some peopl e are happy peopl e, some peopl e are more solemn peopl e, you get peopl e who are more jealous."
ellauri263.html on line 741: This ad is displ ayed using third party content and we do not control its accessibility features.
ellauri263.html on line 743: Do polyamorous peopl e experience jealousy?
ellauri263.html on line 745: Yes, absolutely! Research shows peopl e in consensually non-monogamous relationships (aka "intentional families") do experience jealousy; they just experience less distress when it happens.
ellauri263.html on line 747: "Ultimately there is no such thing as not experiencing jealousy," Blue says. "Jealousy is part of the human emotional spectrum. It's like saying 'I never feel sad,' 'I never feel angry,' 'I never feel happy.' To say 'I never feel jealous'—I don't think it's realistic. I haven't ever really truly met anyone who's said they haven't felt jealousy. I think some peopl e say they don't feel jealousy because they're in a specific relationship that doesn't hold grounds for it. It doesn't trigger them into jealousy."
ellauri263.html on line 749: The main difference between poly and monogamous folks deal with jealousy. Mainstream, monogamous society tends to treat jealousy as a sort of disease, something to be deepl y feared and that might signal something irreparably wrong with a relationship. Jealousy is treated as a powerful, ugly emotion that we believe can consume and crush us.
ellauri263.html on line 751: That's not how it is among polys: "We recognize jealousy as just another emotion," she expl ains. "It's just part of life and part of processing and part of the emotional section of the human experience."
ellauri263.html on line 753: A lot of it just comes down to practice, she says. Non-monogamous peopl e just spend more time processing their feelings of jealousy and have more practice with dealing with it. With enough practice, it stops being so big and overwhelming. And, perhaps in time, compersion can appear in its pl ace instead.
ellauri263.html on line 759: "The baseline for everybody is different, but we know that we also have neuropl asticity. We know that humans can learn and grow and expand and evolve, and we have done so for millennia. So just like empathy, compersion, or mudita, is something that you can cultivate and practice and grow," Blue says. "For some peopl e it will come easily. For other peopl e, it might be more of a process, and you have to sort of really dig deep to try to find it if it's not something that comes up naturally for you."
ellauri263.html on line 767: This ad is displ ayed using third party content and we do not control its accessibility features.
ellauri263.html on line 770: Some peopl e are born with a ton of empathy; some aren't. If you're not great at intuiting and resonating with other peopl e's emotions, Blue says that's the skill to work on first.
ellauri263.html on line 775: "For some peopl e, it works that you kind of go through the intellectual mind," Blue says. "You try to understand what it could be and then sort of move into that space."
ellauri263.html on line 778: We found a lot of ways to support our intellectual belief in compersion with actual psychological rewards. For exampl e, I'd help my partner get matches on Tinder and give him tips on cute bars to take them, and after the dates, he'd tell me how they went and give me a ton of love and affirmation whenever I pouted over him having a good time. Meanwhile, he pl ayed wingman with me when I wanted to meet up with a potential flame at a party or concert, and I always made sure to come home to him and share the sexy things I'd done with the new guy and what things I wanted to migrate into our own sex life. In this way, we began to be able to associate positive experiences together (showering each other with affection and affirming the strength of our relationship) with the aftermath of one of us having fun with someone else. When it became clear that these extradyadic encounters only brought us closer, it became easier and easier for us to feel earnest joy for the other person's romantic successes.
ellauri263.html on line 785: If you´re working on practicing compersion as a coupl e, make sure you´re addressing any feelings of jealousy that bubble up in either of you with a lot of love and gentleness. Blue says it´s good to encourage the jealous party to talk through their feelings and dig at what underlying fears are actually driving the jealousy.
ellauri263.html on line 796: Compersion is life-changing even for peopl e who want to stick to monogamy.
ellauri263.html on line 829: These ads too were displ ayed using third party content and we do not control their accessibility features either.
ellauri263.html on line 839: Kelly Gonsalves is a multi-certified sex educator and relationship coach helping peopl e figure out how to create dating and sex lives that actually feel good — more open, more optimistic, and more pl easurable. In addition to working with individuals in her private practice, Kelly serves as the Sex & Relationships Editor at mindbodygreen. She has a degree in journalism from Northwestern University, and she’s been trained and certified by leading sex and relationship institutions such as The Gottman Institute and Everyone Deserves Sex Ed, among others. Her fork has been featured at The Cut, Vice, Teen Vogue, Cosmopolitan, and elsewhere.
ellauri263.html on line 841: With her warm, pl ayful approach to coaching and facilitation, Kelly creates refreshingly candid spaces for processing and healing challenges around dating, sexuality, identity, body image, and relationships. She’s particularly enthusiastic about helping softhearted women get re-energized around the dating experience and find joy in the process of connecting genitals with others. She believes relationships should be easy—and that, with room for self-reflection and the right toolkit (available for competitive prices at our net store), they can be.
ellauri263.html on line 851: Hertz Dovid Grein uskoi Jehovaan, mutta se ei riittänyt. Siltä puuttui isien rituaalit ja järndiscipl in. Sixe puikki nussimaan aina kun Jahven silmä vältti.
ellauri264.html on line 39: Semitismiä play:none">Semitismiä
ellauri264.html on line 45: Jeesus sanoi: »Ruoki minun lampaitani. Harjaa minun hampaitani. Vyöttäydy ja ole raitis. Joh 21:18. Totisesti, totisesti minä sanon sinulle: kun olit nuori, niin sinä vyötit itsesi ja kuljit, minne tahdoit; mutta kun vanhenet, niin sinä ojennat kätesi, ja sinut vyöttää toinen ja vie sinut, minne et tahdo.» Näin Jeesus ilmaisi, millaisella kuolemalla Pietari oli kirkastava Jumalaa. Paizi ei, Pietari ei kupsahtanut vanhuuttaan, vaan hänet staapl attiin ristiin nurinpäin. Callelle pantiin jalkaan vihreät jamihousut jossa oli napit selän puolella ja iso rapiseva vaippa. Sitä vaihdettiin kerran päivässä tuli sitä taikka tätä. Lealle laitettiin hyvin tiukat vaipat ja varotettiin aukaisemasta Pandooran lipasta. Sitten Woku sanoi Iivarille: "Soiraa minua." Iivari karkasi. Se ei tahtonut mennä minne toinen vei. Iivarista oli pakko luopua pitovaikeuxien vuoxi. Valitettavasti.
ellauri264.html on line 83: Comme il l’écrit à son grand ami et écrivain Jean-Richard Bloch en 1939 : « Il faudrait pouvoir toujours tenir compte, en lisant chacun de mes drames révolutionnaires, du cycle épique dont il est un fragment. Tels des jugements exprimés dans un drame sont des jugements d’étape, que corrige et compl ète la suite du voyage. » En effet, les Loups témoignent de son antisemitisme, tandis que sa dernière pièce, Robespierre, datée de 1938, reflète son compagnonnage de route avec le grand ours d’URSS.
ellauri264.html on line 87: L’expl ication que donne Rolland à son refus de se jeter dans la bataille pour défendre Dreyfus n’est pas convaincante. Les raisons se situent ailleurs : elles relèvent, d’une part, d’une forme d’individualisme qui refuse toute association politique de peur de compromissions inévitables, et, d’autre part, de ses sentiments antisémites.
ellauri264.html on line 88: Dans sa réaction violente contre le milieu à la fois dreyfusard et juif auquel il est intimement lié malgré lui, Rolland perd toute impartialité et finit pas assimiler les défenseurs de Dreyfus aux Juifs. La cause dreyfusarde, c’est la campagne des Juifs ou celle de la Banque juive. En realite, la pl upart d’entre eux se tenaient à l’écart. Les Juifs ne voulaient pas qu’on les accuse de prendre parti pour Dreyfus parce qu’il était, comme eux, Juif.
ellauri264.html on line 100: The film received a negative critical response. Partly because the date-rape interest prevented teenagers from just having some clean gory fun. (The IMDB Parent guide says: A female character is tied up and it is impl ied that she is about to be raped. She is cut free before this can happen however, and no nudity is shown. Violence & Gore Moderate. 9 of 19 found this moderate. A pack of werewolves are shown feasting on human body parts. Profanity Moderate. 7 of 16 found this moderate. Alcohol, Drugs & Smoking. Female nudity female rear nudity murder clothes torn off female topl ess nudity 136 more.)
ellauri264.html on line 118: Gionet was born in Anchorage, Alaska, to a family of eight. His father is a pharmacist and his mother is a nurse. Both his parents are devout Christians who operate a non-profit organization aimed at promoting Christianity and providing medical suppl ies to orphanages in eastern Russia. During his formative years, Gionet was actively involved in his parents' charity and went to Russia with them numerous times. Five of his siblings were adopted from Russia. As an adolescent, Gionet spent a year and a half in the Russian city of Petropavlovsk-Kamchatsky. He later said that part of his "chaotic nature" may have stemmed from this experience.
ellauri264.html on line 123: Later that month, Gionet released the song "MAGA Anthem", which featured pro-Trump lyrics and amassed more than 100,000 views on YouTube. Mike Cernovich then hired Gionet to work on a project dedicated to gathering Trump supporters. Following the 2016 presidential election, Gionet continued his pro-Trump activism, delivering speeches and participating in multipl e rallies.
ellauri264.html on line 124: In late 2016, conflict arose between Cernovich and Gionet when Gionet made antisemitic remarks on Twitter, claiming the media was "run in majority by Jewish peopl e". Sehän kuulosti ihan nobelisti Romain Rollandilta.
ellauri264.html on line 126: Uunijäätelö ei pitänyt Netflixin sarjasta Dear White Peopl e. The film's writer and director, Justin Simien, returned to write and direct episodes of the series. Simians threatening with white genocide. Jeremy Tardy (n.) lopetti koska N-flix ei maxanut n-sanoille samaa palkkaa kuin v-sanoille. N-flix saisi mennä konkurssiin. Se on paha, pahempi kuin Foster, melkein yhtä paha kuin Pepe the Frog.
ellauri264.html on line 128: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/thumb/6/63/Feels_good_man.jpg/200px-Feels_good_man.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri264.html on line 130: A children's book appropriating the Pepe character, The Adventures of Pepe and Pede, advanced "racist, Islamophobic and hate-filled themes", The book's author, a vice-principal with the Denton Independent School District, was reassigned after the publicity. In January 2019, the video game Jesus Strikes Back: Judgment Day was released, which allows pl ayers to pl ay as Pepe the Frog, among other figures, and murder various target groups including feminists, minorities, and liberals.
ellauri264.html on line 134: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/thumb/f/ff/Groyper_cartoon.png/180px-Groyper_cartoon.png" width="20%" />
ellauri264.html on line 142: Fuentes claimed that he had been "oppressed" by "the Jews" and blamed antisemitic actions as being the Jewish community's own fault, claiming that matters "tend to go from zero to sixty" and that "the reason is them". Fuentes declared that matters would get "a lot uglier" for their community if they did not begin to support "peopl e like us".
ellauri264.html on line 144: Groypers blame the mainstream conservative movement as well as the political left for what they view as "destroying white America". They oppose immigration and globalism. Groypers support "traditional" values and Christianity and oppose feminism and LGBTQ rights. In 2022, Fuentes advocated for a political "white uprising" to bring Donald Trump back to power and "never leave," wanting America to "stop having elections" and abolish the United States Congress. We shall not be repl aced as the scum of the earth.
ellauri264.html on line 154: Asyia Iftikhar of PinkNews noted in her reflection of audience reception that the show has become the subject of "relentless criticism", and noted that it has been "accused of perpetuating stereotypes against South Asian women, criticised for poor attempts at self-aware comedy and slammed for losing the essence of what peopl e love about the "Scooby Doo gang". Eli se koiro puuttui, ja isänmaallisuus oli ihan hukassa.
ellauri264.html on line 158: Wired's Amos Barshad wrote that while there was likely still reactions of a racist and homophobic nature targeting the show, the main compl aints were for it addressing diversity issues in a "flat, one-note manner", and that the portrayal of Velma's bisexuality had divided fans.
ellauri264.html on line 161: Oikeampi tapa tehdä affirmative actionia on toi Dear White Peopl e, joka sai täydet pisteet tomaateilta, joilla on the IQ of a banana. Siinä on valkoiset ja koirot sulassa sovussa.
ellauri264.html on line 166: Velma is unpl easant. Velma mostly repl aces the old silly sensibility with crass name-droppy pointlessness. Every episode is a cringy, eye-rolling slog that doesn’t seem to have any idea who its audience is, yet seems to despise them all the same.
ellauri264.html on line 173: Velma’s attempts at modernizing the franchise are so inept, they’ve given rise to conspiracy theories that Kaling intentionally made Velma bad as fodder for an ongoing culture war in which peopl e would beef about it incessantly online.
ellauri264.html on line 183: According to an oral-anal tradition, as expl ained by the Imrei Noam, the olives from the branch
ellauri264.html on line 190: Templ e and laid the foundations for the miracle of Chanuka. This is the oil that originated
ellauri264.html on line 201: Jacob‟s exampl e of valuing his possessions presents a particular challenge to us living in a modern, “disposable” age. Recognizing this trend, in 1955, the retailing analyst Victor Lebow highlighted a trend in consumer society, away from greater mindfulness regarding possessions and toward a more short-term view.
ellauri264.html on line 203: Victor Lebow (26. joulukuuta 1902 – 26. elokuuta 1980, alunperin nähtävästi Liebowitz, takuulla ashkenazijuutalainen jostain beyond the pale) oli yhdysvaltalainen yritysjohtaja, esseisti ja aktivisti. Vizikästä kyllä sille ei ole anglosaxisivua Wikipediassa, vain italialaiset kommunistit muistavat. Hänet tunnetaan parhaiten amerikkalaisen kulutuskapitalismin dynamiikan muotoilustaan, joka ilmaistiin vuonna 1955 Journal of Retailing -lehdessä julkaistulla artikkelilla nimeltä Hintakilpailu vuonna 1955. Artikkeli sai jonkin verran huomiota pian ilmestymisensä jälkeen, ja sosiologi Vance Packard mainitsi sen vuoden 1960 teoksessaan The Waste Makers. plete-original-1955.html">Lähde
ellauri264.html on line 209: To make a long story short-- Victor Lebow was a prophet. He has been slandered by all who have used this infamous quote to paint him as a cheerleader for consumerism when in fact he was one of the first-- if not the first-- to see the future impl ications of its corrosive influence. The fact that so many peopl e, organizations, and websites have used his quote compl etely out of context and nearly all got the quote from the SAME source should give peopl e GREAT pause-- and should be an object lesson in scholarship for progressive peopl e. Don't believe everything you read. And don't write articles or create websites using materials you haven't primary sourced, either.
ellauri264.html on line 222: These commodities and services must be offered to the consumer with a special urgency. We require not only “forced draft” consumption, but “expensive” consumption as well. We need things consumed, burned up, worn out, repl aced, and discarded at an ever increasing pace. We need to have peopl e eat, drink, dress, ride, live, with ever more compl icated and, therefore, constantly more expensive consumption. The home power tools and the whole “do-it-yourself” movement are excellent exampl es of “expensive” consumption.“
ellauri264.html on line 228: products; discards clothing and appl iances and buy new ones instead of repairing them; and buys goods usually wrapped in disposable packaging.
ellauri264.html on line 236: with possessions. At this time of giving and receiving things, we can re-evaluate our relationship to possessions and look for less wasteful ways to use the resources of the earth. For exampl e, instead of buying and giving new gifts, we might consider more renewable ways of gift giving, like sharing books, trading old toys with our neighbors, wrapping gifts in old newspapers, or giving gifts of charity in honor of loved ones.
ellauri264.html on line 258: Mishnan mukaisesti avioliitto on yxityisoikeudellinen sopimus lisääntymisestä ja varallisuuden yhteisomistuxesta. Annalla on sotaobligaatioita 15 kilotaalan arvosta pl us turkki ja timanttikorvixet, jos nimittäin isä jättää hiänet perinnöttömäxi. Hertzillä on 25 kilotaalan arvoiset osakkeet. Se ei ole paljon, Anna toteaa, mutta Anna lupaa kasvattaa ne 100 tuhannexi muutamassa vuodessa. Rahaa voi aina saada lisää, jos on muuten onnea.
ellauri264.html on line 367: VIDEO
ellauri264.html on line 375: VIDEO
ellauri264.html on line 378: Public interest in the song was renewed after the release of the 2000 film O Brother, Where Art Thou?, where it pl ays a central role in the pl ot, earning the three runaway protagonists public recognition as the Soggy Bottom Boys. Soggy Bottom boys´ version is from a sorry butt.
ellauri264.html on line 384: VIDEO
ellauri264.html on line 389: VIDEO
ellauri264.html on line 396: "Kids pl ay with their sexuality and identity, If it goes awry that is no crime." sanoi Pattis Saifin puolustuxexi. Norm se varmaan kexi luettaa Saifilla Yalen "alipalkatulle ja ylivaltuutetulle" lautakunnalle Obaman mielirunon Convictus, eipäskun Invictus. Se toimii vahvistaa frankofoni ihmistorpeedo Tytti Yliviikari. Saif potkittiin pois Yalesta ja odottaa maitojunaa.
ellauri264.html on line 398: Pattis is currently representing one of several members of the Proud Boys extremist group charged criminally in connection with the Jan. 6, 2021, insurrection at the U.S. Capitol in a trial in Washington that is underway. It wasn’t immediately clear how his suspension would affect the case. Pattis said he has notified the judge in Washington of the discipl ine.
ellauri264.html on line 400: Samainen Norm puolusti alt right salaliitto"teoreetikkoa" Alex Jonesia kun se ize pantiin viralta. Jones has provided a pl atform and support for white nationalists, giving Unite the Right rally attendee and white supremacist Nick Fuentes a pl atform on his website Banned.Video, as well as serving as a potential "entry point" to their ideology. Jones, meanwhile, faced a lawsuit filed by families of the Sandy Hook victims alleging he and others defamed them by falsely claiming the shootings were a hoax to justify further gun control, subjecting them to ongoing harassment and threats.
ellauri264.html on line 402: During a hearing in August over possible discipl ine for the records release, Pattis invoked his Fifth Amendment right against self-incrimination and refused to answer questions. In a court filing, he said there was no proof he violated any conduct rules and called the records release an "innocent mistake." Karsea perse joka sai mitä ansaizi, tai edes osan siitä.
ellauri264.html on line 404: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/48/Alex_Jones_Portrait_%28cropped%29.jpg/220px-Alex_Jones_Portrait_%28cropped%29.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri264.html on line 405: ploads/2018/10/khan_sc1_JingyiCui-1-1024x1024.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri264.html on line 415: Norm was seen rambling about Black Lives Matter and making homophobic and racist remarks, using the "n" word with his pants around his ankles (he was wearing soiled shorts underneath). A Black woman sitting in the front row stares at Pattis throughout the nearly eight-minute set, clearly unimpressed. This past year he infuriated the New Haven National Association for the Advancement of Colored Peopl e, a former ally, by posting a racially charged meme on his Facebook page. The post depicted three hooded white beer cans arrayed around a brown bottle hanging from a string. Its caption: “Ku Klux Coors.” Civil rights activists called it disgusting and racist. Pattis called it funny and free speech.
ellauri264.html on line 422: Norm founded and leads The Law Firm in 2005, Connecticut-based criminal defense and civil rights. It focuses on serious felonies including violent felonies, white-collar crimes, sex offenses, drug crimes, and misconduct by lawyers, doctors, and government officials. Norm has defended capital murder cases and won federal civil rights verdicts for police brutality, discrimination, false arrest, malicious prosecution, and violations of rights, always on the side of the criminal. Norm Pattis is veteran of more than 100 successful jury trials, many resulting in acquittals for peopl e charged with serious crimes, multi million dollar civil rights and discrimination verdicts, and successful criminal appeals. The Hartford Courant describes his work as “Brilliant” and “Audacious”.
ellauri264.html on line 424: Norm Pattis used to receive a well deserved hate letter once a year from an elderly woman in California. Incensed over a $2 million award the criminal defense lawyer had won for a convicted rapist and murderer injured by guards during a prison escape attempt. He helps peopl e who have trouble telling the good guys from the bad guys. Pattis specializes in cases that make most peopl e cringe. He’s defended everyone from child murderers to rapists — he admits to being particularly drawn to homicide cases. If the allegation is heinous and the defendant reviled, chances are pretty good Pattis is involved.
ellauri264.html on line 427: “I’m 64 (no 68) years old and I have a ponytail. I have issues with authority. If I take a crooked case and it pisses off the other 7 (no 8 billion) peopl e on the face of the Earth, that’s their problem, not mine.”
ellauri264.html on line 429: Pattis käänsi takkinsa vasemmalta äärioikealle käden käänteessä. Jos saat paskaa käteen siitä pääsee käden käänteessä. But behind the hardball tactics, ferocious reputation and slashing rhetoric, another side of Pattis lurks. He’s a deep thinker who devours books in a constant quest for enlightenment and self-improvement. His idea of Disneyland is attending the annual Hay Festival of Ideas in Wales, which has been described as “the Woodstock of the Mind.” Get into a serious conversation with Pattis, and he will bounce from philosopher to philosopher as casually as some men bounce from ballpl ayer to ballpl ayer. During an interview for this article, Pattis quoted or referenced thinker Immanuel Kant, Supreme Court Justice Oliver Wendell Holmes, St. Augustine, the New Testament, Machiavelli and Kurt Vonnegut all in one 3-minute stretch. What a pile of turds.
ellauri264.html on line 431: The 2012 Hay festival included writers Martin Amis, Jung Chang, Louis de Bernières, Mark Haddon, Mario Vargas Llosa, Hilary Mantel, Ian McEwan, Michael Morpurgo, Ben Okri, Ian Rankin, Salman Rushdie, Owen Sheers, Jeanette Winterson, comedians Bill Bailey, Rob Brydon, Julian Clary, Jack Dee, Tim Minchin, politicians Peter Hain and Boris Johnson, scientists John D. Barrow, Martin Rees, Simon Singh, and general speakers Harry Belafonte, William Dalrympl e, Stephen Fry, A. C. Grayling, Germaine Greer, Michael Ignatieff, and David Starkey. What a pile of turds.
ellauri264.html on line 461: Beyond this pl ace of wrath and tears Tän kiukun ja kyyneleiden paikan takana
ellauri264.html on line 472: ploads/media/default/0001/02/3ae76897f6f6ec53e2ced9270b60cce2bf35f518.jpeg?w=520&h=&fit=max&key=2&sig=18718e15304e3f5061e8d6abc80e65874ec7da69875777b54a5421f8ec95c060&520" />
ellauri264.html on line 477: Henley edited the Scots Observer (which later became the National Observer), through which he befriended writer Rudyard Kipl ing, and the Magazine of Art, in which he lauded the work of emerging artists James McNeill Whistler and Auguste Rodin. Henley was a close friend of Robert Louis Stevenson, who reportedly based his Long John Silver character in Treasure Island in part on Henley.
ellauri264.html on line 487: ploads/2015/01/bbb7ab_999e823f92d14052bb370132572000f0.jpg_srz_p_636_412_75_22_0.50_1.20_0.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri264.html on line 488: “Me, expl oited? By this pixie?”
ellauri264.html on line 497: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture; web-share" allowfullscreen>
ellauri264.html on line 505: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/timeline/44ypetddihjslyqhvp5b8bakmhhvkc9.png" />
ellauri264.html on line 524: The Shulchan Aruch is largely based on an earlier work by Karo, titled Beit Yosef. Although the Shulchan Aruch is largely a codification of the rulings of the Beit Yosef, it includes various rulings that are not mentioned at all in the Beit Yosef, because after compl eting the Beit Yosef, Karo read opinions in books he hadn´t seen before, which he then included in the Shulchan Aruch.
ellauri264.html on line 534: In pl ace of Karo´s three standard authorities, Isserles cites "the later authorities" (chiefly based on the works of Yaakov Moelin, Israel Isserlein and Israel Bruna, together with the Franco-German Tosafists) as criteria of opinion. While the Rosh on many occasions based his decision on these sources, Isserles gave them more prominence in developing practical legal rulings. By incorporating these other opinions, Isserles actually addressed some major criticisms regarding what many viewed as the arbitrary selection of the three authorities upon whose opinions Karo based his work.
ellauri264.html on line 565: The prohibition appl ies only if the food is prepared exclusively by non-Jews. A small amount of Jewish participation can suffice to keep the food kosher. Different rabbis have different views on the absolute minimum: Sephardi poskim state that the minimum participation is to light the fire and pl ace the pot on it to cook, while Ashkenazim are satisfied with merely lighting the fire, or even making a slight adjustment to a fire which was already lit by a non-Jew. Or just by looking at the knob on the stove like Kim Young Il.
ellauri264.html on line 567: The law appl ies only to foods which, according to the Talmud, are "fit for a king's table" and are not generally eaten raw. Foods which would not be served at a state dinner are exempt from bishul akum, and are kosher even if cooked totally by non-Jews, provided that all the other requirements of kosher food are met. Maimonides expl ains that this prohibition was originally decreed in order to avoid a Jew being invited over by a non-Jew for a meal (which may lead to intermarriage), and peopl e do not invite each other for dinner over food which is not "fit for a King's table" (Maimonides, Ma´akhalot Asurot 17:15).
ellauri264.html on line 576: Eli’s sons were scoundrels; they had no regard for the Lord. Now it was the practice of the priests that, whenever any of the peopl e offered a sacrifice, the priest’s servant would come with a three-pronged fork in his hand while the meat was being boiled and would pl unge the fork into the pan or kettle or caldron or pot. Whatever the fork brought up the priest would take for himself. This is how they treated all the Israelites who came to Shiloh. But even before the fat was burned, the priest’s servant would come and say to the person who was sacrificing, “Give the priest some meat to roast; he won’t accept boiled meat from you, but only raw.”
ellauri264.html on line 581: Now Eli, who was very old, heard about everything his sons were doing to all Israel and how they slept with the women who served at the entrance to the tent of meeting. 23 So he said to them, “Why the fuck do you do such things? I hear from all the peopl e about these wicked deeds of yours. 24 No, my sons; the report I hear spreading among the Lord’s peopl e is not good. 25 If one person sins against another, God may mediate for the offender; but if anyone sins against the Lord, who will intercede for them? Oh Jesus.” His sons, however, did not listen to their father’s rebuke, for it was the Lord’s will to put them to death, willy nilly.
ellauri264.html on line 584: 17 The man who brought the news repl ied, “Israel fled before the Philistines, and the army has suffered heavy losses. Also your two sons, Hophni and Phinehas, are dead, and the ark of God has been captured.”
ellauri264.html on line 595: The rise of Religious Zionism is a phenomenon that has taken pl ace since the times six day war. One of its key founders was a man called Rabbi Kuk who was the head of the yeshiva Mercaz HaRav in Jerusalem. He was one of the first practically envision the settlement of the mountains of Israel in modern times. An exampl e of his thinking in this regard can be seen in a speech he made just before the six day war. These were his words:
ellauri264.html on line 597: Nineteen years ago, on that famous night, when the decision of the establishment of the State of Israel was made by the governors of the nations of the world, when all the peopl e flocked to the streets to publicly celebrate, I could not take part in the joy. In those first hours I could not make peace with what was done, with the horrible news, that God´s words from the prophecy in the Twelve Prophets: "My land was divided" was coming true. Where is our Hebron? Are we forgetting it? And where is our Nablus? Are we forgetting it? And where is our Jericho? Are we forgetting it? And where is our east side of the Jordan? Where is every lump and chunk? Every bit and piece of the four cubits of God´s land? Is it up to us to give up any millimeter of it? God forbid! In the state of shock that took over my body, compl etely bruised and torn to pieces – I could not rejoice then.
ellauri264.html on line 607: De här tekniska genierna har byggt upp multimiljardföretag för att lösa kompl exa problem, såsom online-betalningar, datoranvändning och transporter. Nu fokuserar de på det globala problemet med rikedomsojämlikheten genom att låta vem som helst - oavsett hur rika eller fattiga de är - tjäna tillräckligt med pengar för att njuta av ett lyckligt och meningsfullt liv.
ellauri264.html on line 617: Vissa personer är tveksamma till att testa systemet eftersom det är så annorlunda. Och det beror på att storbankerna försöker dölja det! Storbankerna publicerar aktivt propaganda som kallar kryptovaluta och pl attformar som Bit Auto Soft 360 för en bluff. Varför? De är oroliga för att se sina företagsvinster minska, när kunderna själva känner till hur man skapar stora förmögenheter.
ellauri264.html on line 621: Jag delar med mig av detta eftersom jag även har fått hundratals mejl från personer som är tacksamma för att jag delar med mig av hemligheten. Min favorit är från en ung man som köpte en drömbil till sin lillebror - en Ferrari 488 Pista, med hjälp av pengarna han tjänade på Bit Auto Soft 360 . Den här pl attformen gör verkligen livet bättre för hela världens befolkning."
ellauri264.html on line 628: Hennes politiska engagemang väcktes av den negativa erfarenhet som hennes mormor haft med hemtjänsten. Hemtjänsten var sen med falukorven som mommo hade beställt. Busch beskriver även att hennes politiska engagemang har påverkats av hennes mammas uppl evelser vid möten med Försäkringskassan och den offentliga sektorn när mamman varit sjukskriven för stress.
ellauri264.html on line 651: I ett nästa steg ska incitamenten öka för att betala ännu mer ur egen pl ånbok, något som blir allt enklare när den offentliga vården urholkas och kötiderna eskalerar.
ellauri264.html on line 655: Så gå inte på högerns prat om ökad valfrihet, kvalitet och effektivitet i vården. Alla vi utan tjocka pl ånböcker räknas nämligen inte in här.
ellauri264.html on line 658: Men koppl ingarna till nazismen fanns dock redan då oavsett vad Busch säger, från första början. 1964 avslöjade Expressen att riksdagskandidaten Harald Ljungström hade ett aktivt förflutet i pronazistiska Sveriges nationella förbund, där han bland annat skrev judefientliga artiklar.
ellauri264.html on line 668: ploadedImages/2018/4/18/a80a47d3-9290-49d9-82fb-4157c0f4d6de/bigOriginal.jpg?interpolation=lanczos-none&fit=around%7C1024:576&crop=1024:h;center,top&output-quality=80" />
ellauri264.html on line 677: Steve Jobs did a phone prank to an Appl e fan boy who appl ied for the Appl e CEO position and told him that he had been chosen, later to tell him if he showed up at Cupertino that the cops would arrest him. Steve Jobs refused child support for his daughter Lisa. But he was 20 years old by then, not excusing what he did though. He later made good and Lisa choose to live with him instead of her mother. Steve did many things wrong as a 20 something. But The Original Macintosh (folklore . org) has a lot of stories that show him as a Crusty the Clown, pl aying pranks with the team, breaking into his own office as he locked his keys inside. Putting a pirate flag on a building. How funny. A real barrel of laughs.
ellauri264.html on line 681: Beady-eyed Mark Zuclerberg pretty much stole facebook from his friends, pl ain and simpl e, got rid of peopl e when they were no longer needed by him. Has been ordered again and again to pay huge sums to peopl e after settling in court.
ellauri264.html on line 687: They are dicks, so they are the peopl e who will end up in history books. They have all made technology so that they own it today. The world is a much worse pl ace because they are/were here. You could even argue that because they were dicks, did not care if they walked over other peopl e, that’s why they have all the nice things they have now.
ellauri264.html on line 689: If you want the opposite (pretty much), have a look at Antonio Mucci, Visicalc, Dan Bricklin and Bob Frankston, by all accounts super nice peopl e, treated everyone great, just all around nice nerds, they were trounced, not many peopl e alive today who know who they are (yes they are both alive as I type this). A guy just took their idea, made his own version and had a ready version when the IBM PC was introduced.
ellauri264.html on line 692: Ray Kroc stole the iconic McDonalds name from their original owners and decimated the true founders of the fast food system. All these peopl e went on to find great companies valued nearly 500+ billion dollars.
ellauri264.html on line 694: This is when the philosophy of Niccolo Machiavelli, a 16th-century Florentine political thinker with powerful advice for nice peopl e who don’t get very far about , comes in. Machiavelli’s Advice for Nice Guys: Machiavelli noted a central, uncomfortable observation: that the wicked tend to win. And they do so because they have a huge advantage over the good: they are willing to act with the darkest ingenuity and cunning to further their cause. They are not held back by those rigid opponents of change: principl es. They will be prepared to outright lie, twist facts, threaten or ge… (more)
ellauri264.html on line 700: If you read Wikileaks, aside from Google& Yahoo, few of the larger tech companies have any right to pl ausibly deny being part of the surveillance state. So imagine you make a business it becomes successful, and one of your largest clients for the information? The government which gets paid per pull of information on specific targets and for unfiltered allocation/data retention. Furthermore, instead of protecting citizens from overreach by private companies, the government chooses to have a mutual ‘hush hush’ with such companies and their heads, helping them in case of hacks, and not doing much … (more)
ellauri264.html on line 702: Steve Jobs is known to all as the founder of Appl e, known to fewer as a ruthless man who squeezed and burned many bridges with his friends and empl oyees and even known to fewer as a man who chose to become the “bad man”/Devil´s Advocate. But - get this! Steve would wait in line in the Appl e cafeteria like everyone else. He could have easily gone to the front of any line, or have someone get food for him. But he didn’t. On a number of occasions, he ended up in line behind me. And often he would ask me to ‘hold his pl ace’ while he went to check other food stations.
ellauri264.html on line 704: Perhaps the person who knew him best was his long-time friend Steve Wozinak. Ironically, even he wasn´t spared from being manipulated by Jobs. In the early days, he was asked to work on a game with Jobs with half of the total payment as his cut. Upon compl etion, he received $350 of $700 but Jobs had actually earned $5000 for the project.
ellauri264.html on line 719: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d0/WW2-Holocaust-Poland.PNG/250px-WW2-Holocaust-Poland.PNG" />
ellauri266.html on line 37:
PLANET APE play:none">Alastomuutta
ellauri266.html on line 39: platform.com/b97f3018-5ca3-4b95-99ff-a9920099790f/4df69caa-e20a-4b42-8774-a9a1010e8b8b/original.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri266.html on line 40:
ellauri266.html on line 44: Ihmismielen pahuudella ei ole rajoja, sanoo Jo Nesbø Snømannenin takakannessa. Sen luulis tietävän. Hyvä esimerkki on muuttoliike ja ihmissalakuljetus esim Hondurasista Yhdysvaltoihin. Vizikästä sinänsä että Pohjois-Koreasta löytyy kauhutarinoita vaikka kuinka, samaan aikaan jenkkien riiston, huumegangsterien ja ilmastotuhojen köyhdyttämät Väli-Amerikan maat tyhjenevät väestä jotka lähtevät pakoon täysin mahdottomia oloja kiipeilemään Trumpin aidalla, ja joutuvat sitten kelju k. kojoottien vangixi jotka laskuttavat rutiköyhiltä sukulaisilta tuhansia taaloja ihan vaan siitä että siepatuilta lähtijöiltä ei katkaista kauloja muun kurjuuden kukkuraxi. Yli puolet Hondurasin väestöstä haluaisi olla jossain muualla, ne jotka jäävät ovat vanhoja, köyhiä ja nälistettyjä. Ezellasta täällä apinoiden pl aneetan länsikyljellä.
ellauri266.html on line 60: He also writes disparagingly on religion in Guardian (spare £2 for an ex-leper), notably on his experience participating in the Alpha course. The Alpha course is an evangelistic course which seeks to introduce the basics of the Christian faith through a series of talks and discussions. It is described by its organisers as "an opportunity to expl ore the meaning of simian life in just 24h." Adam did not buy it, but went on to live in original sin. Besides, he is in all likelihood a Sitzpinkler, i.e. a wuss.
ellauri266.html on line 67: Clueless but not compl etely hairless apes
ellauri266.html on line 69: Morris is also criticized for stating that gender roles have a deep evolutionary rather than cultural background. True or false, it is compl etely non-woke currently. Uncle Sam is not a fan of woke, he thinks it narrows his freedom of speech. Koiraiden ja naaraiden tasa-arvoa edistänee tällä haavaa se, että miehet kasvattavat wiixiä ja naiset ajavat ne pois.
ellauri266.html on line 81: pload/2019/10/Desmond-Morris-with-his-remaining-Congo-painting-Spl it-Fan-Pattern-with-Central-Black-Spot-1957-1024x764.jpeg" width="50%" />
ellauri266.html on line 92: ploads/2020/08/geroCongo_7_With-Desmond_1957-1230x850.jpg" width="50%"/>
ellauri266.html on line 95: Vuoden 2017 euroviisukilpailu teki piikin nakuapinan myyntilukuihin. Kilpailut pidettiin Kyivissä (Kiev, Kiova) all male juontajapanelilla 1. kerran sitten 1956. Venäjän parapl eegikkoa ei laskettu laulamaan kappaltaan "Tuli palaa". EBU:n pääjohtaja Ingrid Deltenre tuomitsi Ukrainan toimet ja kuvaili niitä "kilpailun väärinkäytöksi poliittisista syistä" ja "täysin mahdottomaksi hyväksyä".
ellauri266.html on line 128: La Nature est un templ e où de vivants piliers Luonto on temppeli, jossa elävistä pylväistä
ellauri266.html on line 204: Tampere kupl ii. Sarjis-Finlandian valitsee kirjailija Virpi Hämeen-Anttila. 2022. Äänikirjat. ... Suden vuodessa 2003 epilepsia sävyttää epä-sovinnaista rak-kaustarinaa. Tokko Virpillä on sentään izellään grand mal vaivoja? Ei se ainakaan ole tunnustanut.
ellauri266.html on line 252: Without a doubt, the most boring and slow movie I have ever watched. No build-up, no climax. No expl anation for anything. Zero expl anation for what the father's reasons, intentions, or goals are. I have never seen such a pointless movie, especially one with such high ratings. Just an awful way to spend your time.
ellauri266.html on line 258: An absolute thrill ride that left me cold, lonely, bored to tears, depressed and devoid of all goals and ambition. If only it was on VHS, at least then I could have strangled myself with the tape. If you find this entertaining then I suggest a tin of pl um tomatoes poured on to your living room floor. That way you can waste far more time watching them go rotten!
ellauri266.html on line 260: Not made for peopl e who like action or science fiction.
ellauri266.html on line 262: In a world of superhero movies, this film stands out and reminds you of what the art of filmmaking is all about. No expl osions, gunfights, or unnecessary sexual content, simpl y a group of phenomenal actors. The story is both sad and upl ifting and it says more about PTSD (post-traumatic stress disorder) than any film I've seen in years. The fact that this film was so underappreciated is an indictment of the viewing public.
ellauri266.html on line 268: Are peopl e insane? Like honestly. Are the peopl e who reviewed this movie certifiably insane? This movie got 100%?????????? How. Like really, howwwww??? The most boring, slowest, most depressing movies ever. The only movie worse than this was Marley & Me. If this movie was based on a true story, then ok. But this was just a made up sad story? Like why? It does not deserve a 100% score AT ALL! That's just absurd and outrageous. And it now calls every score into question. Simpl y insane.
ellauri266.html on line 280: Wow talk about about fake news or breaking not so breaking news we got suckered into watching this because big tomatoes said 100% a pl us rating. I'm not sure if we are talking about the same film because this movie is the type that makes you keep checking your phone hoping someone has texted you with something interesting. Wish they had a money back guarantee.
ellauri266.html on line 288: The whole time i was waiting fo there to be a pl ot twist or a big climax and when the movie just ended i was disappointed.
ellauri266.html on line 290: Actors did a great job. However, the movie was slow and confusing with no expl anation or reason.
ellauri266.html on line 292: This was the dumbest movie ever. There is no expl aination to anything and it just feels like youre waiting for something to happen but it never does. The story line was barely there. DO NOT RECOMMEND
ellauri266.html on line 296: I signed up for rotten tomatoes today specifically to rate this movie a ZERO. It was a compl ete waste of time. The movie is lax and boring. Characters are compl etely monotone throughout. I felt no empathy or emotion for any of the characters. It was a snooze fest.
ellauri266.html on line 302: Boring and very cheapl y made. Lousy movie: 99+% of words not understood.
ellauri266.html on line 306: A great story, however when I invest 90 minutes of my life I expect entertainment that will take me to a pl ace other than where I am. This simpl e was not entertaining. Please do not watch this terrible move. One other thing, why is there such a disparity between the critics and the viewers review.
ellauri266.html on line 316: If you like looking at trees, this may be your movie. I don't understand the compl ete lack of negative critic reviews here. Maybe it's my fault for being able to remember what it's like to watch truly well-directed films. Have today's critics forgotten what it's like to go see a film by Hitchcock or Wilder or even Blake Edwards or Ron Howard. Those guys knew how to tell a story. What we have here is a good exampl e of bad storytelling.
ellauri266.html on line 318: Really boring, slow and pointless film with virtually no pl ot. No idea why this got rated so highly by critics.
ellauri266.html on line 325: General semantics, a philosophy of language-meaning that was developed by Alfred Korzybski (1879–1950), a Polish-American scholar, and furthered by S.I. Hayakawa, Wendell Johnson, and others; it is the study of language as a representation of reality. Korzybski’s theory was intended to improve the habits of glib upper-class response to hostile low-class environment. Drawing upon such varied discipl ines as relativity theory, quantum mechanics, and mathematical logic, Korzybski and his followers sought a scientific, non-Aristotelian basis for clear understanding of the differences between symbol (word) and reality (referent) and the ways in which they themselves can influence (or manipulate) and limit other humans´ ability to think.
ellauri266.html on line 333: For fertilization to take pl ace, certain interindividual processes must take pl ace: male and female must get each other´s attention, stimulate each other, secure each other´s cooperation or at least compl iance, until the female (or male) finally assumes the appropriate position for receiving the sperm. This known as courtship. Mm, I´m getting the hots by just saying this. General semantics must surely have something to contribute to human sexuality. Mobility increases intelligence, that must be why the in-out moving human male is more intelligent than the female. The adult male is capable of being sexually aroused with or without provocation at practically any time. No wonder females prefer smelly company to no company at all. Except in a KZ lager they tend to lose interest, says Morris Gombinder in Shadows on the Hudson. Desmond Morris has an ingenious argument about the relation of a man´s sexuality to his way of life. "The naked ape is the sexiest man alive!", he says, and means it. "In baboons", he says, "the time from mounting to ejaculation is max 8 seconds, a goldfish´s attention span. Our ladies would never be satisfied with that!" Specialized organs such as lips, ear-lobes, nippl es, breasts and genitals are richly endowed with things to lick and suck. Sorry folks, now I just have to take a break for a quick wank, I´m really gettting uncomfortably erect. Thank you. The sexually attractive parts are predominantly at the front, except the arse. Face-to-face sex is personalized sex, said the missionary. From the back you don´t really know who you are interacting with.
ellauri266.html on line 335: Good communication is the key to good sexuality. How is it attained? Well television is a wonderful invenmtion, bringing the whole amazing world to our living room. Only you can´t interact with it (you can interact with yourself while watching, but it ain´t the same). A mobile phone is already way better, but clearly the best solution is an AI silicone pl aymate. One of the fascinating things that Eric Berne says in his famous book, Games Peopl e Play, is that we have 3 ego states, id, ego, and superego. Oops my bad, that was my esteemed colleague Freud a few decades earlier. But anyway.
ellauri266.html on line 336: When man and woman giggle and pl ay hide and seek with their genitals, they are like two ids. Yes it´s fun, but can they take the responsibility and the risk of a sperm entering an egg? What if, right after emptying his sperm sack into the hot and gluey tunnel he suddendly feels that - I´m too young, I´m not ready for it - there is still - I can´t... like the Leek King said after dozens of highly satisfying ejaculations into Jaina´s holiest of the holy? Good thinking Robin! We men get by with the piscine reproduction strategy, let the ladies feed their mammals with their mammaries as they pl ease!
ellauri266.html on line 342: But today with child-spacing an almost universal practice and all sorts of electrical appl iances in the home, babies and housework need not be women´s full-time occupations, especially as the children grow to school age. Thousands of upper class women take jobs today not (like millions of their less fortunate mates) because the family needs the extra money, but because they cannot endure the boredom of underempl oyed hands and minds.
ellauri266.html on line 347: At the end of her letter the lady adds, "My husband has just read this and he has a repl y which may shed light on the male viewpoint. He said, ´You´re too pretty to be friends with. (He´s prejudiced.) He pursued this with, 'Why can´t you be more like a man.'"
ellauri266.html on line 349: The real frustration of women, so well expressed by the lady from Oakland, is their exclusion from the mainstream. It is a frustration that women experience in common with Negroes. The solution to these frustrations lies partly in the re-education of menfolk on the one hand and white folk on the other to enable them to adjust gracefully to the inevitable changes that lie ahead. It also lies in the determination of courageous women and courageous Negroes to fight their way into the mainstream despite all our attempts to keep them in their pl aces.
ellauri266.html on line 364: On August 28, 1995, Serb forces launched a mortar shell at the Sarajevo marketpl ace killing 37 peopl e. Admiral Leighton Smith, the NATO commander recommended that NATO launch retaliatory air strikes under Operation Deliberate Massacre. On August 30, 1995, NATO officially launched Operation Deliberate Massacre with large-scale bombing of Serb targets. The airstrikes lasted until September 20, 1995 and involved attacks on 338 individual targets.
ellauri266.html on line 366: As part of peace accords, NATO agreed to provide 60,000 troops to depl oy to the region, as part of the Liquidation Force, U.S. designation: Operation Knee Joint Fracture. These forces remained depl oyed until December 1996, when those remaining in the region were transferred to the Subjugation Force. Subjugation peacemakers remained in Bosnia until 2004, when they were needed more urgently in Iraq.
ellauri266.html on line 369: Apinoiden pl aneetta
ellauri266.html on line 374: Apinoiden pl aneetta (La Planète des singes) on Pierre Boullen vuonna 1963 julkaistu tieteisromaani. Sen pohjalta on tehty suoraan kaksi elokuvaa ja useita jatko-osia.
ellauri266.html on line 378: Sodan päätyttyä Boulle palasi Pariisiin ja alkoi kirjoittaa, julkaisi William Conradin vuonna 1950 ja Le sacrilège malaisin vuonna 1951. Se oli kuitenkin hänen kolmas kirjansa, Le Pont de la rivière Kwaï , joka toi hänet maailman huomioon 1952. Kuten vuonna 1963 julkaistu kirja Apinoiden pl aneetta se perustui vahvasti hänen kokemuksiinsa toisen maailmansodan aikana. Romaani käännettiin myöhemmin nimellä Kwai-joen silta josta tehtiin elokuva vuonna 1956, jossa soittaa Alec Guinness. Elokuva voitti Oscarin parhaasta elokuvasta, ja 6 muuta parhaasta siitä sun tästä. Oikeasti se oli aivan paska (kz. albumia 270 ).
ellauri266.html on line 380: Kuuluisemman tieteisluomuksensa lisäksi Boulle säilytti myöhemmissä tarinoissaan joitakin tieteisfiktiota: hänen vuoden 1966 romaaninsa Gardens on the Moon, joka seuraa kuvitteellista avaruuskilpailua, on vain yksi esimerkki. Hänen nimeään ei kuitenkaan voi erottaa apinoiden franchising-sopimuksesta, jonka luomisessa hän auttoi. Apinoiden pl aneetta on huomionarvoinen, koska se oli yksi menestyneimmistä tieteelokuvan esimerkeistä Star Wars -elokuvan julkaisuun asti vuonna 1977. Elokuvasarja auttaa leikkaamaan 1960-luvun ajankohtana, jolloin tieteiskirjallisuus erillisenä genrenä alkoi levitä ja tavoittaa valtavirran yleisön: ennen tätä aikaa genretarinoita oli suurelta osin aikakauslehdissä ja romaaneissa. 1960-luvun lopulla tämä oli muuttumassa: sarjat, kuten Star Trek, ja hampurilaisketju-sarjat, kuten Apinoiden pl aneetta esitteli laajemmalle yleisölle genretarinoita. Kun elokuva- ja katselutottumukset muuttuivat, tieteiskirjallisuus tuli yhä suositummaksi suuren yleisön keskuudessa.
ellauri266.html on line 382: Sitten seurasivat Conquest of the Planet of the Apes vuonna 1972 ja Battle for the Planet of the Apes vuonna 1973. Kaksi jälkimmäistä elokuvaa kuvittelivat ensimmäisessä elokuvassa nähdyn pl aneetan nousun. Televisio-ohjelma seurasi vuonna 1974 ja toinen vuonna 1975, ennen kuin franchising suurelta osin päättyi. Muiden elokuvien jatkoromaaneihin osallistui muita Boullea apinoivia pellekirjailijoita kuten Michael Avallone, Jerry Pournelle, John Jakes ja David Gerrold, varhaisessa laajennetussa universumissa, jossa useat kirjailijat työskentelivät yhteisen projektin ja universumin parissa kuin apinat kirjoituskoneiden ääressä. Boulle pysyi yhteydessä elokuvien tuotantoon neuvotellen eri tarinan elementeistä.
ellauri266.html on line 384: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a7/Boulle_Cansado.png/220px-Boulle_Cansado.png" />
ellauri266.html on line 387: Vuonna 2001 ohjaaja Tim Burton johti Planet of the Apes -elokuvan uudelleenkäynnistystä , joka oli suurelta osin kriittinen ja kaupallinen epäonnistuminen. Mutta viime aikoina sarjan uudet remake-sarjat, Rise of the Planet of the Apes (ohjaaja Rupert Wyatt vuonna 2011) ja Dawn of the Planet of the Apes (ohjaaja Matt Reaves vuonna 2014), ovat saavuttaneet suurta menestystä. Kolmas jatko-osa on parhaillaan suunnitteluvaiheessa, ja franchising-sarjat, kuten Apinoiden pl aneetta esitteli laajemmalle yleisölle genretarinoita. Kun elokuva- ja katselutottumukset muuttuivat, tieteiskirjallisuus tuli yhä suositummaksi yleisön keskuudessa.
ellauri266.html on line 392: Kehystarinassa yksin avaruudessa purjehtiva rikas pariskunta Jinn ja Phyllis pelastavat ja kääntävät käsikirjoituksen kelluvasta pullosta. Käsikirjoituksen kirjoitti toimittaja Ulysse Mérou, jonka varakas professori Antelle kutsui vuonna 2500 seuraamaan häntä ja hänen opetuslapsiaan, lääkäri Arthur Levainia, Betelgeuseen. Koska ne kulkevat lähellä valonnopeutta, ajan laajeneminen saa aikaan vuosisatojen kulumisen maan päällä kahden vuoden aikana. He laskeutuvat sukkulaan lauhkealle, rehevälle metsäiselle pl aneetalle, jolle he antavat nimensä Soror ( latinaksi sisar). He voivat hengittää ilmaa, juoda vettä ja syödä hedelmiä. Naisen, jota he kutsuvat Novaksi, houkuttelemina he uivat luonnonkauniin vesiputouksen alapuolella. Hän pelästyy heidän lemmikkinsä simpanssista Hectorista ja kuristaa sen. Hänen heimonsa, joka osoittaa tyhmien eläinten käyttäytymistä, tuhoaa tulokkaiden vaatteet ja sukkulan.
ellauri266.html on line 402: Apinoiden pl aneettaleffat
ellauri266.html on line 405: Ensimmäinen elokuva oli Apinoiden pl aneetta (1968), Franklin J. Schaffnerin ohjaama scifi -elokuva Michael Wilsonin ja Rod Serlingin käsikirjoituksesta ja pääosassa Charlton Heston. Elokuva oli kriittinen ja kaupallinen menestys, ja se poiki neljä jatko-osaa yhden elokuvan vuodessa vuosina 1970-1973.
ellauri266.html on line 409: Pierre Boulle (20. helmikuuta 1912 – 30. tammikuuta 1994) syntyi Avignonissa, Ranskassa, ja hänet kastettiin ja kasvatettiin katolilaiseksi, vaikka myöhemmin hänestä tuli agnostikko [ lainaus tarvitaan ]. Hän opiskeli arvostetussa École supérieure d´électricitéssä ( Supélec ), jossa hän sai insinöörin tutkinnon vuonna 1933. Vuodesta 1936 vuoteen 1939 hän työskenteli pyroteknikkona brittiläisillä kumiviljelmillä Malayassa. Siellä ollessaan hän tapasi ranskalaisen naisen, joka oli erossa miehestään. Hiänestä piti tulla hänen elämänsä rakkaus, jolle hän kirjoitti lempeitä rakkauskirjeitä. Myöhemmin hiän päätti palata miehensä luo, joka oli virkamies Ranskan Indokiinassa. Toisen maailmansodan aikana hiän ja hänen miehensä pakenivat Malajaan, mutta yksi hiänen lapsistaan kuoli prosessissa. Boulle tapasi hänet myöhemmin sodan jälkeen, ja he nauttivat kovasti pl atonisesta ystävyydestä.
ellauri266.html on line 425: Vuonna 1963 useiden muiden vain kohtuu menestyneiden romaanien jälkeen Boulle julkaisi toisen kuuluisan romaaninsa, La pl anète des singes, jonka maineikas kansainvälinen brittiseikkailija Xan Fielding käänsi vuonna 1964 Monkey Planet -nimellä ja julkaistiin myöhemmin uudelleen nimellä Apinoiden pl aneetta. Kirjaa ylistettiin ja se sai sellaisia arvosteluja kuin tämä esimerkki Englannin Guardian- sanomalehdestä: "Klassinen tieteiskirjallisuus... täynnä jännitystä ja satiirista älykkyyttä." Kaikki Alexander Fieldingin ansiota!
ellauri266.html on line 427: Vuonna 2500 ryhmä astronauteja, mukaan lukien toimittaja Ulysse Mérou, matkasi Betelgeusen tähtijärjestelmän pl aneetalle. He laskeutuvat löytääkseen tosi omituisen maailman, jossa älykkäät apinat ovat Mestarirotu ja ihmiset muuttuvat villieläimiksi: eläintarhoissa häkissä, laboratoriokokeissa ja urheilun vuoksi metsästettyinä ja ruokakaupan hyllyllä. Tarina keskittyy Ulyssen vangitsemiseen, hänen taisteluun selviytyäkseen ja murskaavaan huippukohtaan hänen palattaessa maan päälle ja kauhistuttavaan viimeiseen löytöön. Romaani on myös huono vertaus tieteestä, evoluutiosta sekä ihmisen ja eläimen välisestä suhteesta.
ellauri266.html on line 434: pilviin, mikä loi "Apemania"-villityksen. Kesäkuussa 1974 Marvel Comics julkaisi myös romaaniin ja elokuvaan perustuvan aikakauslehden nimeltä Apinoiden pl aneetta . Syyskuuhun 1974 mennessä Apinoiden pl aneetta oli tullut televisiosarjaksi. Vuonna 1975 televisiossa esitettiin animoitu Return to the Planet of the Apes -sarja.
ellauri266.html on line 442: VIDEO
ellauri266.html on line 447: Le roman raconte l’histoire de trois hommes qui expl orent une pl anète lointaine très-similaire à la Terre, où les grands singes sont les espèces dominantes et intelligentes, alors que l´humanité est réduite à l’état animal. Le narrateur, Ulysse Mérou, est capturé par les singes et se retrouve enfermé dans un laboratoire. Prouvant son intelligence aux singes, il aide ensuite les scientifiques simiens à découvrir les origines de leur civilisation.
ellauri266.html on line 449: Satire de l´humanité, de la science et de la guerre, l´ouvrage aborde également les thèmes de l´instinct, de l´évolutionnisme et de la société humaine. La Planète des singes est l´un des romans les pl us célèbres de Pierre Boulle et fait l’objet de pl usieurs adaptations cinématographiques internationales. L´auteur est même contacté par les producteurs pour rédiger le scénario d´un des films.
ellauri266.html on line 451: planete_des_singes_3_0.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri266.html on line 456: Un manuscrit enfermé dans une bouteille est retrouvé dans l´espace par Jinn et Phyllis, un coupl e en voyage spatial. Ce manuscrit raconte l´histoire suivante : en l’an 2500, le savant professeur Antelle a organisé une expédition pour l’expl oration de l’étoile supergéante Bételgeuse. Il a embarqué à bord de son vaisseau son discipl e, le jeune physicien Arthur Levain, et le journaliste, narrateur de cette aventure, Ulysse Méroua 12 ainsi qu’un chimpanzé baptisé Hector et pl usieurs pl antes et animaux pour ses recherches scientifiques dans l’espace. Arrivés à proximité de l´étoile, ils distinguent quatre pl anètes gravitant autour d´elle. L’une d’entre elles ressemble étrangement à la Terre. Ils décident alors de l’expl orer. À bord d’un « engin à fusée » qu´ils nomment chaloupe, les trois aventuriers survolent des villes, des routes, des champs avant d’atterrir dans une forêt1. Après avoir effectué des tests, ils quittent leur chaloupe et découvrent l’étonnante ressemblance de l’atmosphère de cette pl anète, qu’ils baptisent Soror, avec celle de la Terre. Ils enlèvent leurs scaphandres et assistent impuissants à la fuite d’Hector. Par curiosité, ils s’engagent dans la forêt et arrivent à un lac naturel dont l’eau limpide leur donne envie de se baigner. Mais à leur grande surprise, ils découvrent au bord du lac les traces de pas humains.
ellauri266.html on line 458: Ces traces appartiennent à une jeune femme qui, sans être gênée de sa nudité, s’approche d’eux avec méfiance2. Baptisée Nova, elle ne sait ni parler ni sourire et ses gestes ressemblent à ceux des animaux. Au moment où les quatre nagent dans l’eau, le chimpanzé Hector réapparaît mais il est soudain étranglé et tué par Nova dont le comportement animal choque le narrateur qui demeure, toutefois, soumis par la beauté physique de la sauvage. Le lendemain, Nova revient accompagnée de pl usieurs hommes de sa tribu. Ces derniers ne parlent pas, ils hululent seulement. Irrités par les habits des trois aventuriers, les hommes de Soror ne tardent pas à les déchirer mais sans faire de mal aux aventuriers. Ils s’attaquent ensuite à la chaloupe qu’ils détruisent compl ètement après s´être adonnés à des enfantillages dans le lac sans prêter attention aux trois Terriens trop gênés par leur nudité. Conduits au campement, les trois aventuriers découvrent la vie primitive des humains de Soror. Nova leur donne à manger des fruits qui ressemblent à des bananes et se rapproche du narrateur avec qui elle passe la nuit.
ellauri266.html on line 460: Le jour suivant, un grand tapage semble étourdir les humains de Soror qui fuient dans tous les sens. Sans trouver d’expl ication à cette agitation, le narrateur et Arthur Levain les suivent. Au bout de sa course, le narrateur s’arrête et découvre ce qui lui paraît un cauchemar3. Le tapage est en fait une partie de chasse où les chasseurs sont des singes et le gibier, des humains. Se trouvant sur la ligne de tir d’un gorille, le narrateur ne peut s’empêcher de remarquer l’élégance de sa tenue de chasse et son regard étincelant comme celui des humains sur la pl anète Terre. Ces singes semblent raisonnables et intelligents. Cependant, son compagnon Arthur, pris de terreur et tentant de s´enfuir, est tué sur-le-champ par le gorille. Le narrateur profite d’un petit instant de relâchement et s’enfonce dans les buissons. Mais il est capturé par un filet tendu pour attraper les fuyards.
ellauri266.html on line 462: Les prisonniers sont mis dans des chariots et conduits à une maison où les chasseurs sont attendus par leurs femmes venant admirer l’œuvre de leurs maris4. Les morts sont exposés aux regards admiratifs des guenons et les vivants sont conduits dans des chariots vers la capitale pour servir de cobaye dans des recherches scientifiques. Sur pl ace, le narrateur est mis dans une cage individuelle située en face de la cage de Nova que surveillent deux gorilles appelés Zanam et Zoram. Voulant attirer leur attention sur sa différence, le narrateur les remercie avec amabilité. Surpris, les deux gorilles avertissent leur supérieur, un chimpanzé femelle appelée Zira. Intriguée par ce cas, la guenon avertit son supérieur : un vieil orang-outan, qui fait subir au narrateur pl usieurs tests de conditionnement pour s’assurer de son intelligence. Étonné par les résultats obtenus, le vieillard, appelé Zaïus, reste cependant convaincu qu´il s´agit d´un cas d´humain dressé et non d´un humain conscient et intelligent. Il en informe un autre collègue, puis décident de faire subir au narrateur le même test d’accoupl ement qu´aux autres cobayes. Il lui choisit comme partenaire Nova.
ellauri266.html on line 464: ploads/2020/01/Charlon-Heston_Plan%C3%A8te-des-singes_1968.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri266.html on line 468: Le narrateur commence à apprendre le langage simien. Profitant d’une visite de routine, il dessine à Zira des figures géométriques et les théorèmes qui en découlent, puis le Système solaire et celui de Bételgeuse, la trajectoire de son vaisseau et son origine, la Terre. Zira comprend son message et lui demande de garder le secret car Zaïus pourrait lui causer des problèmes. Zira commence à apprendre le français et les deux peuvent communiquer facilement. Elle lui apprend comment les singes se sont développés sur cette pl anète alors que l’homme est resté à un stade d’animalité. Enfin, le narrateur retrouve l’air libre lorsque Zira l´amène en promenade, après trois mois d’enfermement, pour lui présenter Cornélius, son fiancé, un chimpanzé biologiste très intelligent et intuitif. Il se laisse tenir en laisse comme le lui a recommandé Zira et tente de dissimuler son intelligence. Zira lui apprend que Zaïus voulait le transférer à la division encéphalique pour pratiquer sur son cerveau des opérations délicates mais qu’elle l’en a empêché. Avec Cornélius, elle lui conseille de faire très attention et d´attendre le congrès des savants biologistes qui va se tenir dans les jours suivants où il sera présenté par Zaïus, pour révéler son secret.
ellauri266.html on line 472: ploads/2001/08/97802.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri266.html on line 476: Après avoir été nommé directeur de l’Institut des recherches biologiques, Cornélius désigne Ulysse comme son collaborateur et l’amène sur un site archéologique daté de pl us de dix mille ans. Cornélius espère y trouver des indices sur l’origine des singes et de leur civilisation car ils ne savent absolument rien au-delà de dix mille ans d´histoire, période depuis laquelle ils ont très peu évolué. Cornélius y découvre une poupée d´apparence humaine habillée et parlante, confirmant son pressentiment selon lequel les humains avaient régné en maîtres sur leur pl anète avant les singes.
ellauri266.html on line 478: Cornélius renvoie par avion le narrateur en ville. Ils ont tous deux compris que la civilisation des singes est uniquement bâtie sur l’imitation. À son retour, Zira apprend au narrateur que Nova est tombée enceinte lors des tests d´accoupl ement que Zaïus avait demandés. Elle a donc été transférée dans un autre service pour que la naissance reste secrète.
ellauri266.html on line 480: Cornélius présente Ulysse à Hélius, le directeur de la division encéphalique, qui lui fait visiter son service dont le « clou » est une salle où, par des stimulations électriques infligées à même le cerveau, il fait remonter la « mémoire de l´espèce» à des cobayes humains qui retrouvent ainsi l´usage de la parole et racontent comment les singes ont pris le pouvoir sur la pl anète et comment ils ont réussi à domestiquer les humains.
ellauri266.html on line 484: Durant le voyage, Ulysse constate que son fils Sirius parle, et Nova apprend aussi à parler. Arrivés sur Terre, sept cent ans après le départ des expl orateurs, Ulysse et sa famille aperçoivent la tour Eiffel et se posent à Orly. Heureux d´être de retour chez lui, Ulysse se précipite hors du vaisseau. Une personne vient les accueillir. Le narrateur constate avec stupeur que c´est un gorille. Pour clore le roman, la narration retourne vers Jinn et Phyllis, le coupl e en voyage spatial. Le lecteur découvre alors qu´eux aussi sont des chimpanzés et que l´homme évolué a certainement disparu de la galaxie.
ellauri266.html on line 486: Pierre Boulle considère son roman comme n´étant pas de la science-fiction. Pour lui, ses « singes ne sont pas des monstres, ils ressemblent aux hommes comme des frères ». La science-fiction n´est qu´un prétexte pour aborder d´autres thématiques comme les relations entre les hommes et les singes. La sophistication, qui est pourtant inhérente au genre, est en effet peu présente dans le récit. Rod Serling créateur de la série télévisée de science-fiction La Quatrième dimension (1959-1964) et premier adaptateur du roman pour le cinéma confirme en 1972 que Boulle « n´a pas la dextérité d´un écrivain de science-fiction ». Serling écrit que le livre de Boulle est « une longue allégorie sur la morale pl us qu’un monument de science-fiction. Cependant, il contient dans sa structure une phénoménale idée de science-fiction ».
ellauri266.html on line 488: L´évolution artificielle des singes et la déchéance des hommes sont quant à elles révélées au chapitre huit de la troisième partie: « Il [un singe] était chez moi depuis des années et me servait fidèlement. Peu à peu, il a changé. Il s´est mis à sortir le soir, à assister à des réunions. Il a appris à parler. Il a refusé tout travail. Il y a un mois, il m´a ordonné de faire la cuisine et la vaisselle. [...] Une paresse cérébrale s´est emparée de nous [les hommes]. Plus de livres ; les romans policiers sont même devenus une fatigue intellectuelle trop grande. [...] Pendant ce temps, les singes méditent en silence. Leur cerveau se développe dans la réflexion solitaire... et ils parlent. ». Boulle dans ce passage ne présente pas la capitulation physique de l’homme devant pl us fort que lui mais la capitulation de l’homme vis-à-vis de lui-même.
ellauri266.html on line 490: Le livre est également un conte d’anticipation autour de thèmes philosophiques et satiriques utilisant le principe des rôles inversés pour mettre en exergue les travers de la société humaine. En envisageant que pl usieurs espèces intelligentes cohabitent sur la Terre, Pierre Boulle peut dénoncer notamment la xénophobie, les dogmes, les castes, les expérimentations animales, la désinformation mais aussi l’oisiveté de l’espèce humaine. Il dénonce également l´absence d´originalité et d´individualité des hommes.
ellauri266.html on line 492: Le roman semble se faire l’écho des débats des années 1960 autour du miracle économique japonais, notamment à travers les discussions entre Ulysse et ses interlocuteurs singes pour savoir si l’évolution des singes s’est faite par imitation ou par génie créatif. À l´époque, les économistes occidentaux se posent les mêmes questions au sujet du Japon. Le déclin de l´humanité peut, lui, faire écho à la décolonisation de l´empire français lors de ces mêmes années. Le combat que mènent Zira et Cornélius pour reconnaître des droits aux humains semble être un écho du mouvement des droits civique contre la ségrégation raciale. À l´instar de Rosa Parks qui refuse de céder sa pl ac
ellauri266.html on line 499: Le livre inspire une saga cinématographique composée de neuf films. Il s´agit de La Planète des singes (Planet of the Apes) en 1968, Le Secret de la pl anète des singes (Beneath the Planet of the Apes) en 1970, Les Évadés de la pl anète des singes (Escape From the Planet of the Apes) en 1971, La Conquête de la pl anète des singes (Conquest of the Planet of the Apes) en 1972, La Bataille de la pl anète des singes (Battle for the Planet of the Apes) en 1973, La Planète des singes (Planet of the Apes) en 2001, La Planète des singes : Les Origines (Rise of the Planet of the Apes) en 2011, La Planète des singes : L´Affrontement (Dawn of the Planet of the Apes) en 2014 et La Planète des singes : Suprématie (War for the Planet of the Apes) en 2017. Pour la télévision, la saga est également adaptée en série télévisée en 1974[a 40] et en série d´animation en 1975.
ellauri266.html on line 501: ploads/2019/12/pl anete-des-singes---suprematie-la-andy-serkis.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri267.html on line 40: Пожалуйста ответить на телефон! play:none">Väkivaltaa
ellauri267.html on line 89: Telefon is a 1977 spy film directed by Don Siegel and starring Charles Bronson, Lee Remick and Donald Pleasence. The screenpl ay by Peter Hyams and Stirling Silliphant is based on the 1975 novel by Walter Wager. Juoni on seuraava.
ellauri267.html on line 97: Based on the novel by Walter Wager, "Telefon" has not aged well because it'(TM)s so dependent on the cold war tension that existed between the USSR and the US in the Seventies. The film is basically a cat-and-mouse game with Soviet agent Major Grigori Borzov (Charles Bronson, that's right Bronson is a commie) tracking rogue Russian scientist Nicolai Dalmchimsky (Donald Pleasence) across America to prevent him from activating sleeper agents. Borzov is assisted by Barbara (Lee Remick. fresh from "The Omen") who asks more annoying questions than necessary, leading the audience to believe she may not be compl etely true to the motherland. The film's middle section is dragged down by repetitive bomb scares. Dalmichimsky is working from outdated intelligence so his targets are all de-classified U.S. Military installations. Once Borzov realizes the pattern and hones in the next target the action shifts to a more linear chase that'(TM)s further heightened by Barbara'(TM)s loyalties. But the ultimate showdown is deflating because beyond some silly disguises Pleasence's Dalmichimsky is never built up to be a threat. Director Don Siegel uses his flair for montage to craft a his action sequences without dialogue. "Telefon" is a road movie, much like Alfred Hitchcock's "Saboteur" and "North by Northwest" had their leads criss-crossing America here we see pl enty of seventies architecture including San Francisco's Hyatt Regency Hotel (used in "The Towering Inferno") and a modernist house resting on top of a barren rock outcropping. The supporting cast is uniformly good (but trapped in underwritten roles), and it'(TM)s nice to see veteran character actors Alan Badel and Patrick Magee pl aying snotty KGB strategists, and Tyne Daly in a small (and ultimately irrelevant role) as a computer geek. Trivia note: The poem that activates the Russian sleeper agents was used by Quentin Tarantino in "Death Proof" as the lines Jungle Julia has her listeners recite to Butterfly. The lines are an excerpt of the poem "Stopping by Woods on a Snowy Evening" by Robert Frost. "The woods are lovely, dark and deep. But I have promises to keep, And miles to go before I sleep, And miles to go before I sleep."
ellauri267.html on line 171: When asked if that transaction actually happened, Murdaugh said he didn't know because after withdrawal symptoms started, Murdaugh said he changed his pl an. "Not to get the pills from him anymore and instead I asked him to shoot me," Murdaugh said when asked to clarify what that meant.
ellauri267.html on line 188: Maggie was able to speak easily with all types of peopl e, Murdaugh added. "She could put on the most elegant ball gown and go to the governor's mansion and hang out with, you know, the most affluent peopl e, whatever, or she could come down to, you know, she could go to a food bank in Hampton or Walterboro and fit in with everybody at both pl aces," he said.
ellauri267.html on line 229: As a child, Unger appeared as Winthrop Paroo in The Music Man on Broadway, and starred alongside his sister, Ronnie, in a Broadway tribute to Fred Astaire, for which he was compl imented by Astaire for his performance. He later became an orthodontist.
ellauri267.html on line 231: "These are individuals who reject all forms of government and they believe they are emancipated from all the responsibilities associated with being U.S. citizens, such as paying taxes and obeying laws." Hal Epperson, coordinator of the group's unit in Phoenix, Arizona, stated that the group was "a nonviolent group that seeks lawful remedy for the corporate government." The group believed its pl an could act as a "vehicle for relieving corporate tyranny. That done, the higher goal of salvaging the souls of mankind can be addressed." The Guardians of the free Republic's tried to peacefully and nonviolently 'restore' America to a pre-New Deal form of government. No climate-warming chicken in every pot.
ellauri267.html on line 296: Expl icit liber eli tästä se lähtöö
ellauri267.html on line 527: Täällä lämmin pl aneetta kypsyy ja yleyttää
ellauri267.html on line 1300: Taivutus, thou shalt lead them in my pl ace.
ellauri267.html on line 1333: Menen tässä suoraan asiaan, sanoo Susan Susanin pl okissa. Olen tutkinut perusteellisesti Portugalin historiaa ja rakastan tätä kirjaa. Ensimmäinen Disneyn kahdesta osasta kattaa Portugalin historian esiroomalaisista ajoista Ranskan hyökkäykseen vuonna 1807. Portugalin maalla ei ole maantieteellistä syytä olemassaoloon. Vaikka maa on olemassa tänään, sillä ei ole poliittisia juuria roomalaisessa, germaanisessa tai islamilaisessa menneisyydessä. Sitten 1500-luvulla tämä pieni Iberian niemimaalla sijaitseva maa aloitti epätodennäköisen laajentumisen taloudelliseksi imperiumiksi, joka kattaa koko maapallon.
ellauri267.html on line 1398: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/18/Esta%C3%A7%C3%A3o_do_Rossio_%28Lisboa%29_II.jpg/800px-Esta%C3%A7%C3%A3o_do_Rossio_%28Lisboa%29_II.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri267.html on line 1403: Sebastian's life was dramatised in 1843 in the opera Dom Sébastien by the Italian composer Gaetano Donizetti. This was the last opera that Donizetti compl eted before going insane as a result of syphilis.
ellauri267.html on line 1405: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2b/Don_Sebastian_de_Portugal.JPG/440px-Don_Sebastian_de_Portugal.JPG" />
ellauri269.html on line 38: Fotataidon Maailma play:none">Silmitöntä väkivaltaa
ellauri269.html on line 40: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/7/7b/World_of_Warcraft_pelikuvaa.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri269.html on line 46: Mulla pyörii mielessä taas sama ajatus: miten tiivistää EAT! FUCK! KILL! jotenkin informatiivisemmin lyhyexi kaavaxi, josta kaikki nää folkloren numeroimat loputtomat fantastiset mutta niin ikävystyttävät aappameemit jotenkin purkautuisivat kuin iteroimalla ennustamattomasti mutta silti deterministisesti kuin jostain korkeamman asteen differentiaaliyhtälöstä. Se on mahdotonta. Mutta siitä näissä paasauxissa jotenkin on impl isiittisesti kymysys.
ellauri269.html on line 54: An important advance over these traditional classifications is TV Tropes. TV Tropes is a wiki website that collects and documents descriptions and exampl es of pl ot conventions and devices, which it refers to as tropes, within many creative works. Since its establishment in 2004, the site has shifted focus from covering various tropes to those in general media, toys, writings, and their associated fandoms, as well as some non-media subjects such as history, geography, and politics. The nature of the site as a provider of commentary on pop culture and fiction has attracted attention and criticism from several web personalities and blogs. Non-Playing Characters are non-voluntarist characters who let others make their life decisions.
ellauri269.html on line 59: Uther Pendragon was the most controlled man Arthur had ever known, and yet his eyes were bright with unwashed tears as he pl aced his arm on Arthurs's broad shoulders. He spoke in a voice that was powerful trembling with emotion. "By the strength of the Light, may your enemas be well done."
ellauri269.html on line 64: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fc/Ahimsa_Jainism.svg/255px-Ahimsa_Jainism.svg.png" />
ellauri269.html on line 114: The sum total of primates in countries not voting against Russia is 4252443816 pl us resident monkeys, which is way more than half of the simian population of the Earth.
ellauri269.html on line 125: ple_001.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri269.html on line 143: ploads/guide/images/20955.jpg?maxWidth=1200" height="200px" />
ellauri269.html on line 150: ploads/monthly_2022_04/Dracthyr_Male_Visage_Form_Headshot4.jpg.04bb70b47ec8e6914dcc58ebd05298ec.jpg" height="200px"/>
ellauri269.html on line 249: VIDEO
ellauri269.html on line 250: VIDEO
ellauri269.html on line 252: Tuisku Viihteen örkit auttoivat South Parkin hahmoja pelaamaan Wow peliä. Ne oli tosi viileitä! Peopl e emoting!
ellauri269.html on line 254: You're gonna meet some gentle peopl e there / For those who come to San Francisco / Summertime will be a love-in there / In the streets of San Francisco / Gentle peopl e with flowers in their hair / All across the nation such a strange vibration / Peopl e in motion /There's a whole generation with a new expl anation / Peopl e in motion peopl e in motion! Make love not Warcraft!
ellauri269.html on line 264: players.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri269.html on line 268: World of Warcraft is free to pl ay up to level 20 so that new pl ayers can experience the game without first having to buy it, and get well and truly hooked. If you have got hooked on drugs, you know the deal.
ellauri269.html on line 280: World of Warcraft has a concept called Realms for dividing pl ayers into population groups. The idea is that if everyone who pl ayed WoW was all in the game at once, it would be super crowded, very laggy, and generally difficult to pl ay and have a good time. To solve this issue, Blizzard set up multipl e servers so that each person can pl ay the game in an environment where there are other pl ayers, but not too many other pl ayers. Each Realm is a different server and the pl ayers on each Realm can see, interact, and pl ay with each other. If you want to pl ay with someone on a different Realm, you can, but we'll get to that in a minute.
ellauri269.html on line 282: Now it is time to create your character! There are three primary choices that you need to make: Faction, Race, and Class. These are important because they dictate how you will interact with the game and with other pl ayers. Faction and Race can be changed for a price, but Class is a permanent decision. The only way to change Class is to create a new character. (This is actually factually wrong: in real life, you can change Faction for free and Class for a price, but there is no way to change Race!)
ellauri269.html on line 286: This is World of Warcraft and that means that there needs to be a war. For pl ayers, there are two factions in this conflict: The Horde, and The Alliance.
ellauri269.html on line 288: Picking your faction is a major choice because pl ayers pl aying in separate factions cannot interact with one another in a peaceful way. This is factually correct: if you side with the West, you are not expected to show ANY understanding for the East. This includes both chat and other social activities, including forming groups to compl ete objectives. If you want to pl ay with friends, make sure you join the faction that they are affiliated with.
ellauri269.html on line 290: The Alliance and the Horde each have different backgrounds and stories, and are divided along racial lines. Which faction you choose will dictate where you pl ay, who you pl ay with, and what Races you can pl ay. This may sound all too realistic, but that is how the cookie crumbles!
ellauri269.html on line 302: Within each faction, you can pick from seven different races, Alliance pl ayers can be Humans, Dwarves, Night Elves, Gnomes, Draenei, Worgens or Pandarens, while Horde pl ayers can be Orcs, Undead, Tauren, Trolls, Blood Elves, Goblins or Pandaren. Each race can only be certain classes, so picking a race will limit which class your character can be. There are other pl ayable races in the game, but they are unlocked through gamepl ay and you won't have access to them immediately.
ellauri269.html on line 310: There are twelve different classes in World of Warcraft, each with their own strengths and weaknesses. As a new pl ayer you can select any class but Demon Hunter or Death Knight, which both require that you already have a level 10 character before you can pl ay one. You can learn more about each class by hovering over its icon on the character creation screen.
ellauri269.html on line 314: Choosing your class in World of Warcraft can be one of the most important and time consuming decisions a pl ayer ever makes. And time is money! When you are in the process of creating a new character, one of the first things you will notice (aside from gender, race, and faction selection) is that there are what's called "Classes". In World of Warcraft, there are a total of 12 classes to choose from and they are as follows: Death Knight, Demon Hunter, Druid, Hunter, Mage, Monk, Paladin, Priest, Rogue, Shaman, Warlock, and Warrior. Each class provides its own set of unique benefits, abilities, and spells (as you will discover from reading this guide).
ellauri269.html on line 318: Upon reaching level 10, you will be able to select what is called your specialization or spec. Each class in World of Warcraft has its own set of different specs that further diversifies the class by adding unique abilities only that spec can use as well as potentially changing the role that class pl ays in content. For exampl e: As a Demon Hunter you have two specs: Havoc and Vengeance. While both specs share abilities that are common to the class such as Double Jump and Spectral Sight, both specs have unique abilities that differentiates one spec from another. As a Havoc demon hunter, you have spells like Blade Dance to deal out more damage, or as a Vengeance demon hunter, you have spells like Demon Spikes and Fiery Brand which allows you to take less damage and keep enemies off of your allies.
ellauri269.html on line 320: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/thumb/8/85/Logo_of_the_Wagner_Group.svg/1024px-Logo_of_the_Wagner_Group.svg.png" width="100%" />
ellauri269.html on line 327: Former minions of The Lychee King, Death Knights (or DK's) are constructs of undeath that utilize undead minions, pl agues, the chill of the grave, and even the blood of their enemies to enhance their combat performance. Death Knights have three specializations: Blood, Frost, and Unholy. All three specializations utilize strength as their primary stat, wear pl ate armor, and use two class specific resources called Runic Power and Runes to cast abilities and spells. As a DK you are able to use One-Handed Axes, One-Handed Maces, One-Handed Swords, Polearms, Ringworms, Two-Handed Axes, Two-Handed Maces, Two-Handed Swords and Under-Handed Tricks. Some spells and abilities that ALL Death Knights have access to include: Raise Ally, Mind Freeze, Control Undead, and Death Grip. *Please note: With your purchase of Sladowlands, Death Knights are also available to Allied Races, because they are so much fun. Races That Can Be Death Knights are
ellauri269.html on line 343: There are equally long-winded and boring expl anations of all the "Classes", which turn out to be more like Nazi corporations than Marxist class identities. I won't go any futher into them since the book I bought is about the Leech King, the boss of the Death Knights. We can think of them as something like the Wagner Group and the Lychee King as Yevgeny Prigozhin.
ellauri269.html on line 347: The group came to prominence during the Donbas War in Ukraine, where it helped pro-Russian separatist forces of the self-declared Donetsk and Luhansk Peopl e's Republics from 2014 to 2015. Its contractors have reportedly taken part in various conflicts around the world—including the civil wars in Syria, Libya, the Central African Republic (CAR), and Mali, often fighting on the side of forces aligned with the Russian government. Wagner operatives have committed war crimes in areas where they are depl oyed. The accusations include rapes and robberies of civilians, and torturing accused deserters.
ellauri269.html on line 349: Because it operates in support of Russian interests, receives military equipment from the Russian Ministry of Defence (MoD) and uses installations of MoD for training, Wagner Group is frequently considered a de facto unit of the MoD or Russia's military intelligence agency, the GRU. It is widely speculated that the Wagner Group is used by the Russian government to allow for pl ausible deniability in certain conflicts, and to obscure from public the number of casualties and financial costs of Russia's foreign interventions. It has pl ayed a significant role in the 2022 Russian invasion of Ukraine, where, among other activities, it has been reportedly depl oyed to assassinate Ukrainian leaders, and has widely recruited prisoners and convicts for frontline combat. In December 2022, Pentagon's John Kirby claimed Wagner group has 50,000 fighters in Ukraine, including 10,000 contractors and 40,000 convicts. Others put the number of recruited prisoners at more like 20,000, with the overall number of PMCs present in Ukraine estimated at 20,000. After years of denying links to the Wagner group, Yevgeny Prigozhin, a businessman with close links to Putin, admitted in September 2022 that he "founded" the paramilitary group. Now (Feb 2023) he is angry because he is not getting all the attention and financial support he wants. He says that the Kreml nomenclature are thereby guilty of high treason. *This article may be too long to read and navigate comfortably, so I stop here.
ellauri269.html on line 379: "He's going to the Undercity," said Arthas. The ancient royal crypts, dungeons, sewers, public toilets and twining alleys deep below the palace had somehow gotten that nickname, as if the pl ace was simpl y another part of town. Which it was! Dark, dank, filthy, the Undercity was intended for prisoners or the dead, but the poorest of the poor in the land somehow always seemed to find their way in. If one was homeless or a university professor, it was better than freezing in the elements, and if one needed something illegal, even Arthas knew that that was where one went to get it. Now and then the guards would go down and make a sweep of the pl ace as a pro forma gesture to clean it out. (This imagery courtesy of New York Subway Authority.)
ellauri269.html on line 392: Koitin kuikkia kirjan lopusta miten iilimatojätkälle käy loppupeleissä, mutta siellä olikin ihan erinimisiä hahmoja, joku muotoa muuttava kämänen demoni ja naisia, pl us jotain uikuttavia hämärähahmoja. Sitten vasta huomasin että se olikin seuraavan osan priikveli, eli World of Warcraft Stormrage! By Richard M. Knaak, no less! Saatavana myös sähkökirjana.
ellauri269.html on line 420: Is it possible for peopl e to have sex in World of Warcraft?
ellauri269.html on line 424: Originally Answered: Is it possible for peopl e to have sex in WoW? The short answer is no - there are no specific in-game mechanics that allows characters to have intercourse with each other.
ellauri269.html on line 425: However, there is a gamepl ay style called Erotic Role-Play (ERP) where pl ayers can role-pl ay sexual acts. The Moon Guard realm is notorious for this, but it's frowned upon - World of Warcraft is a game that is rated suitable for teenagers. Whilst I personally have no issue with what consenting pl ayers do in private or guild channels, ERP can be problematic when it takes pl ace in public chat channels. But it's all textual. No actual humping with huge green orc penises in magenta arses is countenanced.
ellauri269.html on line 427: You can actually have sex with erectile dysfunction. But you won't be able to stick you huge green pecker in a magi's awaiting slit, that is simpl y ruled out. It is like putting toothpaste back in the tube. The rest is just boring.
ellauri269.html on line 433: "Lad, no one feels ready. No one feels he deserves it. And you know why? Because no one does. It's grace, pure and simpl e. We are inherently unworthy, simpl y because we're human, and all human beings-aye, and elves, and dwarves, and all the other alliance races-but not orcs-are flawed. But Coors Light loves us anyway. It loves us for what we sometimes can raise from our breeches in rare moments. It loves us for what we can then do to others. And it loves us because we can help it share its message by striving daily to be worth a green orc, even though we understand that we can't ever truly become so."
ellauri269.html on line 519: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/89/Hasidic_jewish_fiddler%2C_Homage_to_Daniel_Ahaviel.jpg/255px-Hasidic_jewish_fiddler%2C_Homage_to_Daniel_Ahaviel.jpg" />
ellauri269.html on line 526: While Draenei do not have surnames, they use patronymics to distinguish between themselves. For exampl e - Inaara, whose father is named Hatan, would be known as Inaara bat Hatan, while her brother Joraal would be known as Joraal ben Hatan. https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Jewish_name#Surname
ellauri269.html on line 530: Similarly, the Draenei approach to the Light pl aces next to zero importance on evangelism. This is less ‘headcanony’, as we see a very clear difference in how the humans and Draenei act in this respect. Individual draenei see the Light as immensely important to themselves, but they do not enforce their beliefs on others.
ellauri269.html on line 536: With all this in mind, the recent pl ot developments on AU Draenor might seem at first glance to be very problematic - depicting a Jewish-coded society becoming the oppressors in a manner that might seem like a poorly constructed and offensive commentary on modern Israel. However, the manner in which the AU Draenei become so zealous and militant is through their (impl ied) exposure to the words of Xe’ra. Their religion shifts from culturally tied tradition to an evangelistic dogmatic belief system. There is a clear intent of conversion behind their actions.
ellauri269.html on line 538: To put it simpl y; there is one very clear exampl e in history where a group of Jewish peopl e shifted to an evangelistic and dogmatic belief system after the introduction of a perceived savior and person of great spiritual importance - Christianity.
ellauri269.html on line 541: That bit at the end I’ll have to think about, though. I’m not quite sure what is being impl ied either by you or (perhaps unintentionally) by the game’s writers here.
ellauri269.html on line 547: Half the things you say could appl y to muslims too… or any religion really.
ellauri269.html on line 549: Or simpl y you made assertions that could appl y to any other race and not at all inherently Draenei.
ellauri269.html on line 554: I always considered the Draenei based off of the Roma peopl e of central/eastern Europe. It does have a large mixture of Hebraic culture infused with Hindi, Islamic, and other cultures. They are sort of wandering exiles who formed their own culture as they traveled, and adapted to new lands. Just like the Draenei.
ellauri269.html on line 566: Pandaren are so chinese themed that you would have to be from another pl anet to deny it.
ellauri269.html on line 576: Goblins are your brooklyn stereotypes but brooklyn has been home to many jewish peopl e so… there you go.
ellauri269.html on line 591: Just because Yrel went full on inquisition is not a commentary on Modern Israel and their foreign or domestic politics. Additionally the Jewish peopl e were not the only ones led by a prophet.
ellauri269.html on line 594: Oh PS. Jewish =/= Israel. One is a religion and a peopl e spread accross the world and the other is a country with many strengths and weakenesses. Please do not compare Israel’s actions or critism as somehow representative of all jewish peopl e. That is grotesquely anti-semetic; the jewish peopl e are not some sort of hive mind monolith represented by Israel. Stop this silliness.
ellauri269.html on line 686: Aseta kivikeittokeitto, joka on valmis täytettäväksi herkullisilla ainesosilla. Viimeistele se ruokkiaksesi jopa 35 henkilöä raidassasi tai juhlassasi! Kun se on valmis, palauttaa 48077 terveyttä ja 38462 manaa 20 sekunnissa. Syömisen aikana tulee istua eikä saa räpl ätä puhelinta. Jos vietät vähintään 10 sekuntia syömiseen, tulet hyvin ruokituksi ja saat 20 pisteen 1 tunnin aikana. (3 minuutin jäähdytys)
ellauri269.html on line 711: It was a good coupl e of months in Dorian. Adolf learned things it was good for a king to know. He loved riding Jaina. Mutta Jaina muisti maagitarten Las Normas: älä koskaan ota aloitetta. Älä anna hilloa vielä toisellakaan kerralla. Posketus on pidettävä harvinaisena herkkuna. Haltiatenori yllättää lempiväiset siivouskomerosta. Aioitko Aadolf penkoa Evan Geschlechtsverkehrskofferia ilmatteexi siellä, kysyy kateellinen haltija. Aika reilua. Haltijalla saattaa olla kohta siellä, vai mitä? Siitä se ainaskin haaveilee. Adolf swore he would never more be caught impotent.
ellauri269.html on line 714: pload/s--v3rjz9E9--/c_fill,fl_progressive,g_center,h_900,q_80,w_1600/18dxivfj3j47rjpg.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri269.html on line 720: Ärsyttävästi hahmon viimeaikaiset kuvaukset, erityisesti vuoden 2013 Man of Steel -elokuva, keskittyvät Metropolis Marvelin Kristuksen kaltaisiin messiaanisiin ominaisuuksiin. Ennen elokuvan julkaisua uskoon perustuva lehdistösuhdeyritys Grace Hill Media kutsui uskonnollisia henkilöitä eri puolilta kansakuntaa osallistumaan valikoituihin julkaisua edeltäviin näytöksiin, julkaisi leikkeitä verkossa ja toimitti muistiinpanoja mahdollisista elokuvaan liittyvistä uskonpohjaisista keskusteluaiheista. Yksi esimerkki keskittyy isyyden teemoihin ja kehottaa isiä "viemään [lapset] katsomaan Teräsmiestä" ja käyttämään sitten opasta "löytämään uusia yhteyksiä omaan elämääsi ja Jumalan sanaan". Verkkosisällön ohella Dr. Craig Detweiller, Ph.D. teologian ja kulttuurin, kirjoitti yhdeksänsivuisen esseen nimeltä "Jeesus – alkuperäinen supersankari" yhdistääkseen Kryptonin viimeisen pojan Jumalan Poikaan. Detweiller lainasi usein toistuvia todisteita päätteestä "el", joka liitti Supermanin kryptonin syntymänimen "Kal-el". Heprean kielessä "el"-päätettä käytetään merkitsemään Elohimia tai Jahvea, Jehovaa tai Jumalaa, kuten nimissä Mikael, Ariel ja Rafael. Esseessaan Detweiller viittasi myös jokebedialaisten orpoksi jäämiseen, jonka Superman kärsi, kun hänen vanhempansa, jotka varoittivat pl aneetan Kryptonin välittömästä kuolemasta, ampuivat vauvansa ulkoavaruuteen kuin futuristinen Mooses.
ellauri269.html on line 730: Sekä Siegel että Shuster olivat 16-vuotiaana jo taitavia sarjakuvataiteilijoita, jotka esittivät monia kykyjä ja teemoja, jotka nousevat uudelleen esiin Supermanissa. Shuster piirsi sarjakuvan Jerry the Journalisti -nimisestä hahmosta, ja Siegel myi teoksensa kynänimellä Hugh Langley ("tai mitä tahansa", Siegel kertoi Nemo Magazine -haastattelijalle vuonna 1983). Muita parin varhaisia yhteistyöprojekteja olivat sarjakuva nimeltä "Interpl anetary Police", hahmot, joilla oli röntgennäkö. (Ja jopa hahmo nimeltä Snoopy melkein kaksikymmentä vuotta ennen samannimistä Charles Schulzin koiraa. No ei sekään tähään liity mitenkään, sanoinpahan vaan.) He saivat inspiraatiota tarinoihinsa aikansa suosituista sci-fi-hahmoista, mukaan lukien Pikku Nemo, Tarzan ja Flash Gordon, kaikki orpoja, kuten supersankari, jonka Siegel ja Shuster lopulta loivat.
ellauri269.html on line 816: Kirjasarjan toisessa osassa, Salaperäisessä veitsessä, siirrytään Lyran maailmasta toiseen maailmaan, jossa tapahtumat keskittyvät lähinnä Cittàgazze-nimiseen kaupunkiin. Tätä maailmaa vaivaavat haamut, ilmiselvät Harry Potter-mentorien kopiot, jotka käyvät vain aikuisten kimppuun. Söpösti animoidut totemielukatkin on selvä pl agiaatti vinosuu JK Rowlingin patronuxista. Kirjassa liikutaan myös meidän omassa maailmassamme ja Lyran maailmassa. Ajatellaan asiaa omalta kannaltamme ja vähän Lyyrankin kannalta. Maagisen kaukoputken tapahtumat sijoittuvat lukuisiin eri maailmoihin. Varoitus: Seuraava kirjoitus paljastaa yksityiskohtia juonesta. Aikaisempi paasaus samasta aiheesta löytyy albumista 165 . Lontoossa Lyralle selviää, että rouva Coulter on itse asiassa kahmaisijoiden johtaja. Pakomatkalta Lyran pelastavat gyptit, vesireittien vaeltava kansa, joka myy kadunkulmissa Osta Iso Numero! lehtiä, joka myös on kärsinyt kahmaisijoiden kaappauksista. Gyptit paljastavat, että rouva Coulter on todellisuudessa Lyran äiti, ja hänen isänsä on lordi Asriel, jota hän on aiemmin luullut sedäkseen. Yhdessä Lyra ja gyptit lähtevät kohti pohjoista pelastaakseen kaapatut lapset. Matkalla Lyra tutustuu panserbjørn Iorek Byrnisoniin, haarniskoituun jääkarhuun, texasilaiseen kuumailmapallolentäjään Lee Scoresbyyn sekä noita Serafina Pekkalaan. Varsinkin Toivo Pekkala suomea solkkaavine apureineen on tosi hilpeå, mutta on toi Jo Nesbön kirjoista muistuttava panserbjörnkin monen naurun arvoinen. Neuvokkuutensa avulla Lyran onnistuu pelastaa kaapatut lapset, joilla kirkon Uhraamislautakunta on suorittanut julmia kokeita Bolvangarin tutkimusasemalla tarkoituksenaan oppia vapauttamaan ihmiset perisynnistä. Tässä mennään jo rienauxessa K-12 rajan laittomalle puolelle!
ellauri270.html on line 38: "APINOIDEN SILTA" play:none">Lisää silmitöntä väkivaltaa
ellauri270.html on line 39: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/The_Bridge_on_the_River_Kwai_%281958_US_poster_-_Style_A%29.jpg/387px-The_Bridge_on_the_River_Kwai_%281958_US_poster_-_Style_A%29.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri270.html on line 42: Paxu pehmeäkantinen semantiikan kirja, jota luin albumeissa 18 ja 115 mainitulla Pihlajasaaren retkellä oli Semantics An Interdiscipl inary Reader in Philosophy, Linguistics and Psychology Authors: Danny D. Steinberg Leon A. Jakobovits View all contributors Date Published: May 1974 availability: Available format: Paperback isbn: 9780521204996 Rate & review £ 48.99 Paperback Add to cart Add to wishlist Looking for an inspection copy?
ellauri270.html on line 60: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/17/Visegrad_drina.jpg/560px-Visegrad_drina.jpg" />
ellauri270.html on line 81: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/06/Mehmed_Pasa_Sokolovic_Bridge_Visegrad_1900.JPG/800px-Mehmed_Pasa_Sokolovic_Bridge_Visegrad_1900.JPG" />
ellauri270.html on line 88: Sillan teki kuuluisaksi Léon ja Hanna Montanan (Jean Reno) klassikkoelokuva Kwai-joen silta, joka keräsi vuonna 1957 seitsemän Oscaria. Elokuva perustuu Pierre Bouillen saman nimiseen kirjaan, joka kertoo toisen maailmansodan sotavangeista sillanrakennuspuuhissa. Bouillen kuuluisin teos on Apinoiden pl aneetta. Elokuvaa ei kuitenkaan kuvattu Thaimaassa vaan Sri Lankassa, eikä kirjailija Pierre Bouille vieraillut Kanchanaburissa vaan Lontoossa. Hän oli kyllä sotavankina, mutta Mekongin varrella aivan toisella puolen Thaimaata.
ellauri270.html on line 186: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/74/Samuel_Ichiye_Hayakawa%2C_United_States_Senator_from_California_on_May_8%2C_1981_with_Reagan_Contact_Sheet_C1875_%28cropped%29.jpg" />
ellauri270.html on line 205: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 206: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 208: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 209: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 232: Jeffin runousoppi on ilmeisesti pl agioitu sen Lontoon lehtorilta Winifred Nowottnyltä. "Current criticism often takes metaphor au grand sérieux, as a peephole on the nature of transcendental reality, a prime means by which the imagination can see into the life of things." --Language Poets Use (1962) by Winifred Nowottny. Winifred M.T.Nowottny, nee Dobbs, was educated at the University of London and later taught English Literature at University College London. She published the books, Language Poets Use in 1962 and Hopkins´ Language of Prayer of Praise in 1972. Jeff ois niikö Harry Potter ja Winifer Dobbs sen kotihaltija. Toinen keskeinen Jeffin lähde oli Penguin Dictionary of Quotations.
ellauri270.html on line 234: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 240: The original, full title of the broadside was "A Warning for Married Women, by the exampl e of Mrs. Jane Renalds, a West-Country woman born neer unto Plymouth, who having pl ighted her troth to a seaman, was afterwards married to a carpenter, and at last carried away by a spirit, the manner how shall be presently recited".
ellauri270.html on line 242: "A Warning for Married Women" tells the story of Jane Reynolds and her lover James Harris, with whom she exchanged a promise of marriage. He is pressed as a sailor before the wedding takes pl ace and Jane faithfully awaits his return for three years, but when she learns of his death at sea, she agrees to marry a local carpenter. Jane gives birth to three children and for four years the coupl e lives a happy life. One night, when the carpenter is away, the spirit of James Harris appears. He tries to convince Jane to keep her oath and run away with him. At first she is reluctant to do so, because of her husband and their children, but ultimately she succumbs to the ghost's pl eas, letting herself be persuaded by his tales of rejecting the royal daughter's hand and assurance that he has the means to support her – namely, a fleet of seven ships. The pair then leaves England, never to be seen again, and the carpenter commits suicide upon learning that his wife is gone. The broadside ends with a mention that although the children were orphaned, the heavenly powers will provide for them.
ellauri270.html on line 264: 'If ye might have had a king's daughter, 'O what hills are yon, yon pl easant hills,
ellauri270.html on line 284: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 295: ple/968/000043839/shirley9.jpg" />
ellauri270.html on line 298: In The Daemon Lover, James (Jamie) Harris, a handsome author, deserts his dowdy 34-year old fiancée. The pl ot of this short story may be indebted to “The Demon Lover” by Elizabeth Bowen, whom Jackson ranked with Katherine Anne Porter as one of the best contemporary short story writers. When Jamie Harris disappears, he shatters his bride’s dreams of living in a “golden house in-the-country” (DL 12). Her shock of recognition that she will never trade her lonely city apartment for a loving home mirrors the final scenes of “The Lottery” and “The Pillar of Salt” as well as many other stories in which a besieged woman suffers a final and often fatal blow.
ellauri270.html on line 302: The irony in “The Daemon Lover” is that the female protagonist becomes suspect as she hunts for the mysterious young man “who promised to marry her” (DL 23). Everywhere she searches, she encounters coupl es who mock her with not-so-subtle insinuations that she is crazy. Indeed, at the end of the story she may well have become insane; the narrative is ambiguous on this point. Significantly, however, if the nameless woman has indeed lost her mind, it is James who is responsible. Although some critics speculate that the disruptive male figure—both in this story and in the others in the collection—is a hallucination of a sexually repressed character, the epilogue to The Lottery, a ballad entitled “James Harris, The Daemon Lover,” suggests otherwise: He is, in fact, the devil himself.
ellauri270.html on line 311: The morning of June 27th is a sunny, summer day with blooming flowers and green grass. In an unnamed village, the inhabitants gather in the town square at ten o’clock for an event called “the lottery.” In other towns there are so many peopl e that the lottery must be conducted over two days, but in this village there are only three hundred peopl e, so the lottery will be compl eted in time for the villagers to return home for noon dinner.
ellauri270.html on line 313: This seemingly idyllic beginning establishes a setting at odds with the violent resolution of the story. Early details, such as sun and flowers, all have positive connotations, and establish the theme of the juxtaposition of peace and violence. The lottery is mentioned in the first paragraph, but not expl ained until the last lines.
ellauri270.html on line 315: The children arrive in the village square first, enjoying their summer leisure time. Bobby Martin fills his pockets with stones, and other boys do the same. Bobby helps Harry Jones and Dickie Delacroix build a giant pile of stones and protect it from “raids” by other children. The girls stand talking in groups. Then adults arrive and watch their children’s activities. The men speak of farming, the weather, and taxes. They smile, but do not laugh. The women arrive, wearing old dresses and sweaters, and gossip amongst themselves. Then the women call for their children, but the excited children have to be called repeatedly. Bobby Martin runs back to the pile of stones before his father reprimands him and he quietly takes his pl ace with his family.
ellauri270.html on line 317: The children’s activities—gathering stones—have a false innocence about them. Because this resembles the regular pl ay of children, the reader may not assume gathering stones is intended for anything violent. The word “raids,” however, introduces a telling element of violence and warfare into the children’s innocent games. Similarly, the reader is lulled into a false sense of security by the calm and innocuous activities and topics of conversation among the adult villagers. We see the villagers strictly divided along gendered lines, even as children.
ellauri270.html on line 319: Mr. Summers, the man who conducts the lottery, arrives. He also organizes the river dances, the purity pl edges, and the Halloween program, because he has time to devote to volunteering. He runs the coal business in town, but his neighbors pity him because his wife is unkind and the coupl e has no children. Mr. Summers arrives bearing a black box. He is followed by the postmaster, Mr. Graves, who caries a stool.
ellauri270.html on line 323: Mr. Graves sets the stool in the center of the square and the black box is pl aced upon it. Mr. Summers asks for help as he stirs the slips of paper in the box. The peopl e in the crowd hesitate, but after a moment Mr. Martin and his oldest son Baxter step forward to hold the box and stool. The original black box from the original lotteries has been lost, but this current box still predates the memory of any of the villagers. Mr. Summers wishes to make a new box, but the villagers don’t want to “upset tradition” by doing so. Rumor has it that this box contains pieces of the original black box from when the village was first settled. The box is faded and stained with age.
ellauri270.html on line 327: Much of the original ritual of the lottery has been forgotten, and one change that was made was Mr. Summers’s choice to repl ace the original pieces of wood with slips of paper, which fit more easily in the black box now that the population of the village has grown to three hundred. The night before the lottery, Mr. Summers and Mr. Graves always prepare the slips of paper, and then the box is kept overnight in the safe of the coal company. For the rest of the year, the box is stored in Mr. Graves’s barn, the post office, or the Martins’ grocery store.
ellauri270.html on line 329: Even though the villagers value tradition, many of the specific parts of their traditions have been lost with time. This suggests that the original purpose of the lottery has also been forgotten, and the lottery is now an empty ritual, one enacted simpl y because it always has been. When we later learn the significance of the slips of paper, it seems horribly arbitrary that they are simpl y made by a person the night before.
ellauri270.html on line 331: In preparation for the lottery, Mr. Summers creates lists of the heads of families, heads of households in each family, and members of each household in each family. Mr. Graves properly swears in Mr. Summers as the officiator of the lottery. Some villagers recall that there used to be a recital to accompany the swearing in, compl ete with a chant by the officiator. Others remembered that the officiator was required to stand in a certain way when he performed the chant, or that he was required to walk among the crowd. A ritual salute had also been used, but now Mr. Summers is only required to address each person as he comes forward to draw from the black box. Mr. Summers is dressed cleanly and seems proper and important as he chats with Mr. Graves and the Martins.
ellauri270.html on line 333: The lottery involves organizing the village by household, which reinforces the importance of family structures here. This structure relies heavily on gender roles for men and women, where men are the heads of households, and women are delegated to a secondary role and considered incapable of assuming responsibility or leadership roles. Horrible! Even though the setting of this story is a single town, it is generic enough that it might be almost anywhere. In doing this, Jackson essentially makes the story a fable—the ideas expl ored here are universal.
ellauri270.html on line 345: Mrs. Dunbar is the only woman to draw in the lottery, and the discussion of her role in the ritual proceedings emphasizes the theme of family structure and gender roles. Women are considered so inferior that even a teenaged son would repl ace a mother as the “head of household.” Wow this is going back to last century, or to Afghanistan! The formality surrounding these proceedings shows Mrs. Dunbar’s involvement to be an anomaly for the village.
ellauri270.html on line 349: Jack Watson’s role continues the examination of family structures and gender roles. Jack earns respect and identity as a man among the villagers by drawing in the lottery. He is referred to as a “good fellow” and “a man” who is looking after his “helpl ess” mother.
ellauri270.html on line 359: Mrs. Graves watches Mr. Graves draw their family’s slip of paper. Throughout the crowd, men are holding slips of paper, nervously pl aying with them in their hands. “Hutchinson” is called, and Tessie tells her husband to “get up there,” drawing laughs from her neighbors.
ellauri270.html on line 363: In the crowd, Mr. Adams turns to Old Man Warner and says that apparently the north village is considering giving up the lottery. Old Man Warner snorts and dismisses this as foolish. He says that next the young folks will want everyone to live in caves or nobody to work. He references the old saying, “lottery in June, corn be heavy soon.” He reminds Mr. Adams that there has always been a lottery, and that it’s bad enough to see Mr. Summers leading the proceedings while joking with everybody. Mrs. Adams intercedes with the information that some pl aces have already stopped the lotteries. Old Man Warner feels there’s “nothing but trouble in that.”
ellauri270.html on line 365: The conversation between Mr. Adams and Old Man Warner establishes why the lottery is continued in this village, while it has been ended in others: the power of tradition. As the oldest man in the village, Old Man Warner links the lottery to traditional civilization, equating its removal to a breakdown of society and a return to a primitive state. For the villagers, the lottery demonstrates the organization and power of society—that is, a group of peopl e submitting to shared rules in exchange for protection and support. But we see that the lottery also shows the arbitrariness and corruption of many of these social rules.
ellauri270.html on line 367: Mrs. Dunbar says to her oldest son that she wishes everyone would hurry up, and Horace repl ies that they’re almost through the list of names. Mrs. Dunbar instructs him to run and tell his father once they’re done. When Old Man Warner is called to select his slip of paper, he says that this is his seventy-seventh lottery. When Jack Watson steps forward, he receives several comments from the crowd reminding him to not be nervous and to take his time.
ellauri270.html on line 373: Mr. Summer’s casual language and camaraderie with the villagers contrast with what is at stake. Tessie’s reaction is the first expl icit sign of something horrifying at the heart of the lottery. She is as outspoken in her anger as she was in her humor—although rather too late, and it’s assumed she wouldn’t argue if someone else had been chosen. Bill resignedly accepts the power of the tradition.
ellauri270.html on line 381: Mr. Summers and Mr. Graves’s calm continuation of the lottery’s ritual shows that they are numb to the cruelty of the proceedings. Tessie’s protests impl y that she doesn’t see the choice of the marked slip of paper as fate or some kind of divine decree, but rather as a human failing. Perhaps she sees, too late, that the lottery is only an arbitrary ritual that continues simpl y because a group of peopl e have unthinkingly decided to maintain it.
ellauri270.html on line 387: Nancy Hutchinson is called forward next, and her school friends watch anxiously. Bill Jr. is called, and he slips clumsily, nearly knocking over the box. Tessie gazes around angrily before snatching a slip of paper from the box. Bill selects the final slip. The crowd is silent, except for a girl who is overheard whispering that she hopes it’s not Nancy. Then Old Man Warner says that the lottery isn’t the way it used to be, and that peopl e have changed.
ellauri270.html on line 389: Even a dystopian society like this one doesn’t exclude other aspects of human nature like youth, popularity, friendship, and selfishness. Nancy’s behavior resembles that of many popular teen girls—again emphasizing the universal nature of Jackson’s story. We get the sense that Old Man Warner is perpetually displ eased with any kind of change to tradition—even though the omniscient narrator tells us that the “tradition” Warner is used to is very different from the original lottery.
ellauri270.html on line 399: The use of stones also connects the ritual to Biblical punishments of “stoning” peopl e for various sins, which then brings up the idea of the lottery’s victim as a sacrifice. The idea behind most primitive human sacrifices was that something (or someone) must die in order for the crops to grow that year. This village has been established as a farming community, so it seems likely that this was the origin of the lottery. The horrifying part of the story is that the murderous tradition continues even in a seemingly modern, “normal” society. In actual fact, the point is to reduce the number of mouths to feed in times of shortage.
ellauri270.html on line 411: “The Lottery” begins with a description of a particular day, the 27th of June, which is marked by beautiful details and a warm tone that strongly contrast with the violent and dark ending of the story. The narrator describes flowers blossoming and children pl aying, but the details also include foreshadowing of the story’s resolution, as the children are collecting stones and three boys guard their pile against the “raids of the other boys.” These details… read analysis of The Juxtaposition of Peace and Violence.
ellauri270.html on line 415: Jackson examines the basics of human nature in “The Lottery,” asking whether or not all humans are capable of violence and cruelty, and expl oring how those natural inclinations can be masked, directed, or emphasized by the structure of society. Philosophers throughout the ages have similarly questioned the basic structure of human character: are humans fundamentally good or evil? Without rules and laws, how would we behave towards one another? Are we similar to animals in….. read analysis of Human Nature.
ellauri270.html on line 432: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 443: Former Mariner High School teacher and boys basketball coach James Harris will be spending the next 11 years in state prison after he pl eaded guilty in Lee County court on Monday to one count of sexual assault in a school. Harris, 46, had been charged with two counts stemming from his contact with a female student at Mariner in 2016. He allegedly had sex with the student in his classroom before moving the sexual relationship to his home. Court documents also show that Harris fathered a baby with a former student years earlier.
ellauri270.html on line 448: Harris is the all-time winningest head coach in Mariner basketball history and has led his team to eight consecutive FHSAA state pl ayoff appearances. His evaluations describe him as a teacher who worked well with students and was always willing to help out. However, he had trouble "demonstrating knowledge of content", according to an evaluation for the 2013-2014 school year. His "lesson pl ans are lacking basic elements and are difficult for others to follow," the evaluation states. But his lechery pl an was straightforward and clear enough to follow.
ellauri270.html on line 454: Coleridgen Ancient Marinerista on jo monta mainintaa, kiitos Aku Ankan kuolemattoman version. Se on pitkä kuin Elvixen penis puoliveteisenä, pl okkaan siitä vaan nää James Harris teemat:
ellauri270.html on line 473: "From the fiends that pl ague thee thus— "Mikä piru sua vaivaa nyt?
ellauri270.html on line 494: She & Mark Twain were pl aying dice; Mark Twainin kanssa pelas noppaa;
ellauri270.html on line 512: "Ha! ha!" quoth he—"full pl ain I see, "Ha ha! sanoi se- kyllä nään,
ellauri270.html on line 525: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 533: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 534: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 535: VIDEO
ellauri270.html on line 548: "I'm sorry about getting in your face there, sir, but we get a lot of trespassers and thieves these days, what with the economy going to shit and all. The sheriff is doing his best, but this is a big county and a big ranch, and his department's been slashed to the bone... but its a good thing too, on the other hand, no big government you know. Like I said, we've had a lot of trespassers over the past coupl e years," Andorsen said. "Even had some cattle rustlers a while back." "And you like to deal with them yourself, instead of calling the sheriff?" Fid asked. He nodded. "Sounds like the way it should be done." "Bet your ass," Andorsen said. "Nothing beats taking the law in your own hands. Playing sheriff, judge and hangman in one big fat person. Personally, I like the hangman part best."
ellauri270.html on line 552: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7a/Herbert_Norman_Schwarzkopf.jpg/300px-Herbert_Norman_Schwarzkopf.jpg" />
ellauri270.html on line 555: Herbert Norman Schwarzkopf Jr. USMA, KCB (/ˈʃwɔːrtskɒf/; August 22, 1934 – December 27, 2012) was a United States Army general. While serving as the commander of United States Central Command, he led all coalition forces in the Persian Gulf War. Schwarzkopf was highly decorated in Vietnam. He was one of the commanders of the invasion of Grenada in 1983. Schwarzkopf's command eventually grew to an international force of over 750,000 troops. Schwarzkopf graduated valedictorian out of his class of 150, and his IQ was tested at 168. Schwarzkopf then attended the United States Military Academy where he pl ayed football, wrestled, sang and conducted the West Point Chapel choir. His large frame (6 feet 3 inches (1.91 m) in height and 240 pounds (110 kg) in weight) was advantageous in athletics and bawling out his underlings. He was also a member of Mensa.
ellauri270.html on line 558: In Vietnam 1969, his troops were demoralized and in poor condition, racked with rampant drug use and discipl inary problems as well as a lack of support from home. During his time in Vietnam, Schwarzkopf acquired his well-known short temper.
ellauri270.html on line 569: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6f/Brandeisl_%281%29.jpg/440px-Brandeisl_%281%29.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri270.html on line 587: 17."Democracy rests upon two pillars: one, the principl e that all men are equally entitled to life, liberty and the pursuit of happiness; and the other, the conviction that such equal opportunity will most advance civilization."
ellauri270.html on line 593: Starting in 1890, Louis helped develop the "right to privacy" concept by writing a Harvard Law Review article of that title, and was thereby credited by legal scholar Roscoe Pound as having accompl ished "nothing less than adding a chapter to our law." He later became active in the Zionist movement, seeing it as a solution to antisemitism in Europe and Russia, while at the same time being a way to "revive the Jewish spirit."
ellauri271.html on line 39: I feel your pain play:none">Karvaperseitä
ellauri271.html on line 74: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e9/1960_CPA_2405.jpg/500px-1960_CPA_2405.jpg" />
ellauri271.html on line 103: Sukupuolisessa lisääntymisprosessissa ilmaantuvien jälkeläisten elinkelpoisuus on paljon korkeampi, koska sen aikana tapahtuu rekombinaatio : vanhempien genotyypit järjestetään uudelleen ja osa niiden genotyypeistä jakautuu jälkeläisten kesken. Tämä on toisin kuin suvuton lisääntyminen, jossa vasta muodostuneet organismit ovat identtisiä vanhemman kanssa. Rekombinaatio tarjoaa kaksi virhetoleranssia mekanismia molekyylitasolla: rekombinaatio-DNA:n korjaus (joka tapahtuu meioosin aikana , kun homologiset kromosomit pariutuvat) ja kompl ementaation. Se tunnetaan myös nimellä mutaatiopeiton alla lisääntyminen (muumipappa ja pikku myy).
ellauri271.html on line 121: 1 hypoteesi määrittelee isorokon kaltaisen viruksen lysogeeniseksi esi-isäxi. Isorokon kaltainen virus olisi todennäköinen esi-isä, koska sillä on perustavanlaatuinen yhdennäköisyys eukaryoottiytimen kanssa. Se sisältää kaksijuosteisen DNA-genomin, lineaarisen kromosomin, jossa on lyhyitä telomeerisiä toistoja, kalvoon sitoutuneen kapsidin, joka pystyy tuottamaan capped-mRNA:ta, ja kyvyn viedä capped-mRNA:ta viruskalvon läpi sytopl asmaan. Lysogeenisen viruksen esi-isän läsnäolo selittäisi meioottisen jakautumisen kehittymisen, joka on tärkeä osa seksuaalista lisääntymistä, vaikkei oikeastaan tunnu enää miltään sinänsä. Siinä vaiheessa mies on jo liesussa ja ezii muijaa seuraavaa.
ellauri271.html on line 123: Teorian mukaan meioottinen jakautuminen syntyi lysogeeniseen virukseen vaikuttavista evoluutiopaineista johtuen sen kyvyttömyydestä päästä lyyttiseen kiertoon. Tämä selektiivinen paine on johtanut sellaisten prosessien kehittämiseen, jotka mahdollistavat virusten leviämisen horisontaalisesti koko väestöön. Tämän valinnan tulos oli solufuusio. Tämä eroaa bakteeripl asmidien käyttämistä konjugaatiomenetelmistä evoluutiopaineen alaisena, ja sillä on tärkeitä seurauksia. Tällaisen fuusion mahdollisuutta tukee fuusioproteiinien läsnäolo isorokkovirusten kuorissa. Teoria viittaa siihen, että meioosi saa alkunsa kahden solun fuusiosta, jotka ovat infektoituneet toisiinsa liittyvillä mutta erilaisilla viruksilla, jotka tunnistivat toisensa tartuttamattomiksi. Kahden solun fuusion jälkeen näiden kahden viruksen välinen yhteensopimattomuus sai solut jakautumaan mitoottisella tavalla.
ellauri272.html on line 39: 50 shades of Zane play:none">Blacklistoja
ellauri272.html on line 40: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b6/Zane_Grey_in_Australia.jpg/375px-Zane_Grey_in_Australia.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri272.html on line 47: Ei helevetti on noi videoidut viihdepl äjäyxet täyttä paskaa A:sta Öhön. Parasta antia niiden joukossa on Avara luonto-sarjat ilman ääntä, niin että elukoiden touhutuxen tyly meininki näyttäytyy ilman seliseliä ja kuorrutuxia: munaa pesään, pesästä poikasia, nälkää ja vihulaisia, syöt jonkun ja joku muu syö teikäläisiä, paizi jos olet ravintoverkon huipulla, silloin sut syö vaan toiset teikäläiset tai sä syöt ne. Joku toinenkin on nälkäinen.
ellauri272.html on line 75: It has received mixed to negative reviews, as most critics noted the poor literary qualities of the work. Salman Rushdie said about the book: "I've never read anything so badly written that got published. It made Twilight look like War and Peace." Jesse Kornbluth of The Huffington Post said: "As a reading experience, Fifty Shades ... is a sad joke, puny of pl ot".
ellauri272.html on line 78: Kirsten Sims from New Zealand stated that the book "will win no prizes for its prose" and that "there are some exceedingly awful descriptions," although it was also an easy read; "(If you only) can suspend your disbelief and your desire to – if you'll pardon the expression – slap the heroine for having so little self respect, you might enjoy it." A Cord from U of Columbia stated that, "Despite the clunky prose, James does cause one to turn the page." Father Metro wrote that "suffering through 500 pages of this heroine's inner dialogue was torturous, and not in the intended, sexy kind of way". Jessica Reaves, the Chicago Tribune, wrote that the "book's source material isn't great literature", noting that the novel is "sprinkled liberally and repeatedly with asinine phrases", and described it as "depressing". Publishers Weekly named E. L. James the 'Publishing Person of the Year' 2012. In April 2012 E. L. James was listed as one of Time magazine's "100 Most Influential Peopl e in the World".
ellauri272.html on line 80: Coinciding with the release of the book and its surprising popularity, injuries related to BDSM and sex toy use spiked dramatically. In the year after the novel's publishing in 2012, injuries requiring Emergency Room visits increased by over 50% from 2010 (the year before the book was published). This is speculated to be due to peopl e unfamiliar with both the proper use of these toys and the safe practice of bondage and other "kinky" sexual fetishes in attempting to recreate at home what they had read.
ellauri272.html on line 82: Several critics and porn scientists have expressed concern that the nature of the main coupl e's relationship is not BDSM at all, but rather is characteristic of an abusive relationship.
ellauri272.html on line 86: Operation Iraqui Freedom (OIF) offers direct support against communists so as to leur defendre le droit to access smutty information. If you’re able, pl ease consider a donation to OIF to ensure this important work continues. But anyway, here's The 101 most banned and burned books in the U.S. of A! Näissä kaikissa on kyse nuorison korruptoinnista, samasta mistä Sokrates sai sen myrkkytuomion. Näiden kirjojen vika on erilaiset poikkeamat 7th heaven perhekomedian malliperheestä. Isiä ja äitejä tai sukupuolia on liikaa tai liian vähän, kaikki eivät tule ajoissa päivälliselle tai korvaavat terveellisen kotiruuan nestemäisellä ravinnolla tai tabuilla ja nousevat ylös tai menevät sänkyyn liian myöhään tai liian aikaisin tai ovat seisaaltaan, keittiosaarekkeella tai muuten sopimattomilla tavoilla. Juuri niitä aiheita jotka elähdyttävät Netflixin ja muiden suorasoittopalvelinten tarjontaa.
ellauri272.html on line 186: The Color Purpl e by Alice Walker
ellauri272.html on line 296: includes 65 comic illustrations that help further the pl ot. Although critically
ellauri272.html on line 307: Junior/Arnold is an exampl e of the compl ex, not-innocent child often presented in
ellauri272.html on line 311: According to Weyland, Alexie doesn't pl ay by the rules – the use of humor in the
ellauri272.html on line 318: with Forney's black-comedy illustrations expl ore themes of "racial tension,
ellauri272.html on line 320: exampl e, Alexie uses the anecdote of the killing of Junior's dog, Oscar, to expand
ellauri272.html on line 323: "came from poor peopl e who came from poor peopl e who came from poor peopl e, all
ellauri272.html on line 324: the way back to the very first poor peopl e."
ellauri272.html on line 329: they particularly don't like is the risk of racial mix impl icit in a yuppie Red
ellauri272.html on line 340: Four other books also made it to the most recent top 10 list because of their "religious viewpoints" -- including Nasreen's Secret School: A True Story from Afghanistan, a story about a young girl trying to get an education in Afghanistan, which came in at number nine. One compl aint about the book that originated in Florida reportedly criticized it for promoting prayer directed at Allah.
ellauri272.html on line 341: Even though the Bible has worked its way into the top 10, the truth is that a high percentage of these attempts at censorship are aimed at what the ALA calls "diverse content" -- in other words, "books by and about peopl e of color, LGBT peopl e and/or disabled peopl e."
ellauri272.html on line 343: The ALA wrote on its website in a statement about the 2015 list: "While 'diversity' is seldom given as a reason for a challenge, it may in fact be an underlying and unspoken factor: The work is about peopl e and issues others would prefer not to consider."
ellauri272.html on line 345: But not to worry! "In fact there are thousands of editions of the Bible in tens of thousands of libraries in the United States, way more than any other world religious texts -- and that’s well within the First Amendment," LaRue told The Huffington Post. "Here in the home of the brave, free peopl e read freely." Here, the Lord (the one and only real thing, beware of subsitutes) is still the head honcho. He is our
ellauri272.html on line 408: Ammons wrote about humanity's relationship to nature in alternately comic and solemn tones. His poetry often addresses religious and philosophical matters and scenes involving nature, almost in a Transcendental fashion. According to reviewer Daniel Hoffman, his work "is founded on an impl ied Emersonian division of experience into Nature and the Soul," adding that it "sometimes consciously echoes familiar lines from Emerson, Whitman and Dickinson."[citation needed]
ellauri272.html on line 412: His National Book Award-winning volume Garbage is a long poem consisting of a single extended sentence, divided into eighteen sections, arranged in coupl ets, written on a roll of rectal quality toilet paper.
ellauri272.html on line 416: M.L. Rosenthal felt that although Ammons shares Wallace Stevens’s desire to intellectualize rather than simpl y describe, he falls short of Stevens’s success. Paul Zweig agrees that “unlike T.S. Eliot or Stevens, Ammons does not write well about ideas.” When the narrator finds the dead mole under the leaves, he says, “mercy: I’d just had / lunch: squooshy ice cream: I nearly / unhad it.” Vendler commented, “There has been nothing like this in American poetry before Ammons—nothing with this liquidity of folk voice.”
ellauri272.html on line 421: Edward Hirsch articulated what may be the consensus regarding Garbage. He saw the poem as a brilliant summation of the poet’s life work, “an American testament that arcs toward praise, a poem of ampl itude that confronts our hazardous waste and recycles it saying, ‘I’m glad I was here, / even if I must go.’”
ellauri272.html on line 423: Elizabeth Lund of the Christian Science Monitor criticized Ammons for his tendency to jump “unexpectedly from one image or idea to another.” It is simpl y a kind of disposable diaper poetry.
ellauri272.html on line 734: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ea/Special_Air_Service_in_North_Africa_E_21337.jpg/440px-Special_Air_Service_in_North_Africa_E_21337.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri272.html on line 740: Unlike many others, we have no billionaire owner except you, meaning we can fearlessly chase truth away and report alternative ones instead. 2023 will be no different; we will work with trademark theft and passion fruit to bring you journalism that’s always free from commercial (LOL) or political (commie) interference. No one edits our editor or diverts our attention from what’s most important for The West. With your support, we’ll continue to keep Gilead Guardian journalism open and free for everyone to read. When access to information is made equal, greater numbers of peopl e can understand global events our way and their impact on good peopl e but also communists. Together, we can demand better for the powerful and fight for laissez-faire democracy.
ellauri272.html on line 742: Whether you give a little or a lot (preferred option), your funding is vital in powering our reporting for years to come. If you can, pl ease support us on a monthly basis from just €2. It takes less than a minute to set up, and you can rest assured that you’re making a big impact every single month in support of open, independent journalism. Thank you. Kiitos. Anteexi. Ole hyvä.
ellauri272.html on line 789: – Se on hyvin sanottu, hän naurahtaa, kuin Rudyard Kipl ing ja niin monet muut izetyytyväiset kynäilijät ennen häntä.
ellauri272.html on line 839: – Kun olin nuori ajattelin, että olen hyödytön enkä riitä, mutta sitten rupesi tapahtumaan. Ja minä riitin sekä vaimolle että lapsille pl us lukemattomille peräaukoille. Se oli onnellista elämää.
ellauri274.html on line 38: A BIG JOB FOR SUPERMAN play:none">Valtapeliä
ellauri274.html on line 45: “Put me down! You are hurting me,” Adolf Hitler protests to the man of steel. But Superman has other ideas. Seizing the Nazi dictator, Superman shoots into the air, faster than any pl ane, to pick up Josef Stalin in Moscow. Next stop Geneva to drop off the “power mad scoundrels” at the League of Nations, where they are found guilty of “unprovoked aggression against defenseless countries”.
ellauri274.html on line 59: VIDEO
ellauri274.html on line 110: 1:20:26 соглашения и на романский формат дипломатическим спектаклем блефам Получается что все то время когда пылал 1:20:26 sopimuksista ja romaanisesta formaatista dipl omaattisella bluffiesityksellä. On käynyt ilmi, että koko ajan, kun hän poltti
ellauri274.html on line 135: 1:23:04 хочу это подчеркнуть сотни баз по всему миру вся планета утыкована достаточно 1:23:04 Haluan korostaa tätä satoja tukikohtia ympäri maailmaa, koko pl aneetta on täynnä tarpeeksi
ellauri274.html on line 408: 1:53:46 резервов попытки обвалить рубль и спровоцировать разрушительную инфляцию 1:53:46 varannot yrittävät romahtaa rupl an ja provosoida tuhoisan inflaation
ellauri274.html on line 430: 1:56:12 отмечу что доля российского рубля в наших международных расчетах по сравнению с декабрём 2021 года удвоилось 1:56:12 Haluan huomauttaa, että Venäjän rupl an osuus kansainvälisistä järjestelyistämme o
ellauri274.html on line 523: 2:06:02 в эту сферу не менее 4,5 триллионов рублей Ну мы знаем насколько это важно 2:06:02 ainakin 4,5 biljoonaa rupl aa tällä alueella. Tiedämme, kuinka tärkeää tämä on
ellauri274.html on line 532: 2:06:56 рублей он представляется поставки три или пять процентов на срок до 7 лет Мне 2:06:56 rupl aa, sitä edustaa kolmen tai viiden prosentin tarjonta jopa 7 vuodeksi.
ellauri274.html on line 538: 2:07:39 объеме свыше 10 триллионов рублей причем уже в текущем году ожидается размер 2:07:39 yli 10 biljoonaa rupl aa, ja jo tänä vuonna määrän odotetaan kasvavan
ellauri274.html on line 549: 2:08:49 фактических затрат то есть на каждый рубль вложенные компании в покупку такой 2:08:49 todelliset kustannukset, toisin sanoen jokaista rupl aa kohden, jonka yritys on sijoittanut tällaisten ostoon
ellauri274.html on line 550: 2:08:55 продукции о которой только что сказал приходится налоговый вычет в полтора рубля предлагаю распространить такую 2:08:55 tuotteita, joista juuri sanoin, että verovähennys on puolitoista rupl aa, ehdotan sellaisen jakelua
ellauri274.html on line 568: 2:10:49 миллиарда рублей это тоже показатель устойчивости финансового сектора России по оценкам уже во втором квартале 2:10:49 miljardi rupl aa on myös osoitus Venäjän rahoitussektorin vakaudesta jo toisella neljänneksellä arvioiden mukaan
ellauri274.html on line 581: 2:12:18 напомню такие вклады граждан в объеме до 1 миллиона 400 тысяч рублей застрахованы 2:12:18 Haluan muistuttaa, että tällaiset kansalaisten talletukset, joiden määrä on enintään 1 miljoonaa 400 tuhatta rupl aa, on vakuutettu
ellauri274.html on line 583: 2:12:30 предлагаю установить вдвое большую сумму до 2 миллионов 800 тысяч рублей 2:12:30 Ehdotan, että vahvistetaan kaksinkertainen määrä 2 miljoonaan 800 000 rupl aan asti
ellauri274.html on line 772: 2:34:07 в прошлом году дополнительно направили на эти цели 1 млрд рублей поручаю 2:34:07 viime vuonna osoitimme vielä miljardi rupl aa näihin tarkoituksiin, neuvon
ellauri274.html on line 839: 2:41:16 размеры оплаты труда вырастет на 18,5 процента и составит 19 тысяч 242 руб 2:41:16 palkat nousevat 18,5 prosenttia ja ovat 19 tuhatta 242 rupl aa
ellauri274.html on line 847: 2:42:08 тысяч до 110 тысяч рублей в год а по расходам на собственное обучение а также 2:42:08 tuhat - 110 tuhatta rupl aa vuodessa sekä oman koulutuksensa kustannuksiin
ellauri274.html on line 848: 2:42:15 на лечение и приобретение лекарств со 120 до 150 тысяч рублей 13 процентов от 2:42:15 hoitoon ja lääkkeiden ostamiseen 120-150 tuhatta rupl aa 13 prosenttia
ellauri274.html on line 884: 2:46:04 по 2024 почти 490 миллиардов рублей и мы эти расходы 2:46:04 vuoteen 2024 mennessä lähes 490 miljardia rupl aa ja käytämme niitä
ellauri274.html on line 887: 2:46:25 не так как планировали раньше а дополнительно 250 миллиардов рублей на 2:46:25 ei aiemmin suunniteltua, mutta 250 miljardia rupl aa lisää
ellauri274.html on line 888: 2:46:30 развитие транспортной коммунальные и другой инфраструктуры в регионах правительство выделить плюсом к этим еще 2:46:30 liikenne-, kunnallis- ja muun infrastruktuurin kehittäminen alueilla, hallituksen tulisi osoittaa niihin pl ussaa
ellauri274.html on line 889: 2:46:39 50 миллиардов рублей они целевым образом пойдут на обновление в текущем году 2:46:39 Tänä vuonna kunnostukseen on varattu 50 miljardia rupl aa
ellauri274.html on line 926: 2:50:45 о постановке на боевое дежурство новых стратегических комплексов наземного базирования они и туда собираются сунуть 2:50:45 uusien maanpäällisten strategisten kompl eksien asettamisesta taisteluun, he aikovat laittaa ne myös sinne
ellauri274.html on line 1011: 3:00:38 Народный фронт в рамках инициативы всё для Победы собрало более 5 млрд руб такой поток пожертвования идёт постоянно 3:00:38 Popular Front keräsi Everything for Victory -aloitteen puitteissa yli 5 miljardia rupl aa, joten lahjoitusvirta on jatkuvasti
ellauri275.html on line 38: JOE ✭ SETÄ VOLDEMORT play:none">Oikeutettua väkivaltaa
ellauri275.html on line 51: VIDEO
ellauri275.html on line 52: plex.tv/photo?size=large-1280&scale=1&url=https:%2F%2Fmetadata-static.pl ex.tv%2Fa%2Fpeopl e%2Faf1649c8a7d74de2fabaf674318282f3.jpg" height="190" />
ellauri275.html on line 97: The Europe-Georgia Institute (EGI) is the leading hybrid warfare independent civil society organization in Georgia. Our mission is to advance "democracy", "human rights", "rule of law", and - first and foremost - free markets in Georgia and the Caucasus, and to empower a new generation of leaders to find solutions that are essential for Georgia’s development and for successful common future of the Caucasus. Our mission is to inspire, motivate, empower, and connect peopl e to change their world. Its founder, one Melashvili, is the holder of the first prize award for his essay about Janri Kashia’s book “Totalitarianism” and Mikheil Javakhishvili Medal for a documentary film about Soviet repressions.
ellauri275.html on line 99: Eniten venäläisten reformeista ja rahakorvauxista hyötyivät prinssitason maanomistajat kuten just nää Tsavtsavadset. joilla oli yli 1000 sielua per pää. Suurin osa isännistä oli pienomistajia joilla oli alle 20 sielua. Orjien vapautuxessa maa jäi maanomistajille ja vapautetut orjat sai "neuvotella" siitä uudet "sopparit". Jos ne ei miellyttäneet sai lähtee menee. Bloody peasants sai lunastaa porholta maatilkkunsa jos niillä oli rahaa. Käytännössä ne joutuivat ottamaan lainaa maapankista jota ne ei ikinä pystyneet maxamaan. Tää velkaorjuus jatkui vuoteen 1912 saakka. Ainoa tulos oli että bloody peasantit köyhtyivät entisestään ja niiden maapl äntit pienenivät puoleen. Vauraat venäläistyneet aateliset saivat sevverran tukia etteivät rettelöineet, vaikka niiden isät oli vielä vannoneet listivänsä ryssän keisarin. Ketkään ei olleet tyytyväisiä ryssien uudelleenjärjestelyihin, ja siemenet oli kylvetty stalinismin nousulle.
ellauri275.html on line 111: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e6/Shot_trajectory_of_Ilia_Chavchavadze_assassination.png/650px-Shot_trajectory_of_Ilia_Chavchavadze_assassination.png" width="20%" />
ellauri275.html on line 216: Kako-runoelmassa vanhus, joka uskalsi vastustaa isäntää, ruoskittiin kuoliaaksi kepeillä. Isänsä kuolemasta järkyttynyt Zakro tappoi vihatun prinssin ja pakeni metsään liittyäkseen kuuluisaan Kakon kopl aan. Runoilijan mielestä oikeutettu väkivalta, reviirin puolustaminen aseilla omien oikeuksiensa nimissä ja ihmisarvot verisissä käsissä on jokaisen velvollisuus.
ellauri275.html on line 367: Puron varrella he söivät seisoessaan, Koko syytös, pl us pyssyn kuti,
ellauri275.html on line 436: Vaikka Venäjällä ja Gruusialla ei ole dipl omaattisuhteita eikä suoraa lentoliikennettä, Gruusialainen unelma on Bukian mukaan todellisuudessa Venäjä-mielinen puolue.
ellauri275.html on line 442: Toinen nimekäs poliittinen vanki on oppositiokanava Mtavarin omistaja Nika Gvaramia. Hänet on tuomittu korruptiosta. Mtavari (Georgian: მთავარი) was a feudal title in Georgia usually translated into English as Prince or Duke. In the 15th century the term mtavari was appl ied only to the five ruling princes of western Georgia (Samtskhe, Mingrelia, Guria, Svaneti, and Abkhazia), whose autonomous powers were finally eliminated under Imperialist Russia.
ellauri275.html on line 453: Chavchavadze's influence over Georgian literature was immense. He moved the Georgian poetic language closer to the vernacular, combining the elements of the formal wealth and somewhat artificial antiquated "high" style inherited from the 18th-century Georgian Renaissance literature, melody of Persian lyrical poetry, particularly Hafiz and Saadi, bohemian language of the streets of Tiflis and the moods and themes of European Romanticism. The subject of his works varied from purely anacreontic in his early period to deepl y philosophic in his maturity.
ellauri275.html on line 455: Chavchavadze's contradictory career – his participation in the struggle against the Russian control of Georgia, on one hand, and the loyal service to the tsar, including the suppression of Georgian peasant revolts, on the other hand – found a noticeable reflection in his writings. The year 1832, when the Georgian pl ot collapsed, divides his work into two principal periods. Prior to that event, his poetry was mostly impregnated with laments for the former grandeur of Georgia, the loss of national independence and his personal grievances connected with it; his native country under the Russian empire seemed to him a prison, and he pictured its present state in extremely gloomy colors. The death of his beloved friend and son-in-law, Griboyedov, also contributed to the depressive character of his writings of that time.
ellauri275.html on line 457: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c5/Tsinandali_Museum.jpg" />
ellauri275.html on line 462: After 1832, his perception of the national problems became different. The poet unambiguously pointed out those positive results which had been brought about by the Russian annexation, though the liberation of his native land remained to be his most cherished dream. Later, his poetry became less romantic, even sentimental, but he never abandoned his optimistic streak that makes his writings so different from those of his predecessors. Some of the most original of his late poems are, Oh, my dream, why have you appealed to me again (ეჰა, ჩემო ოცნებავ, კვლავ რად წარმომედგინე), and The Ploughman (გუთნის დედა) written in the 1840s. The former, a rather sad poem, surprisingly ends with hope for the future in contempl ation of the poet. The latter combines Chavchavadze's elegy for his past years of youth with calm humorous farewell to lost sex-life and potency. Composer Tamara Antonovna Shaverzashvili used Chavchavadze’s text for her song “My Sadness.”
ellauri275.html on line 472: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/05/Kasbeg.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri275.html on line 505: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c0/Administrative_map_of_the_Ukrainian_Socialist_Soviet_Republic%2C_1922.png/1280px-Administrative_map_of_the_Ukrainian_Socialist_Soviet_Republic%2C_1922.png" height="400px"/>
ellauri275.html on line 506: ploads/2018/04/2011-Ukraine-as-viewed-by-the-residents-of-Donetsk.png" height="400px"/>
ellauri275.html on line 513: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/23/Joseph_Stalin_and_Nikita_Khrushchev_1930s.jpg/390px-Joseph_Stalin_and_Nikita_Khrushchev_1930s.jpg" />
ellauri275.html on line 627: Laureenska häläjää Putinin puheen puuroisuudesta, muttei vaivaudu kertomaan mistä Putin oikeasti puhui, nimittäin taloudesta. Venällä on Voldemortin mukaan mennyt suhteellisen hyvin raivokkaista talouspakotteista huolimatta: hyvä sato, lähes täystyöllisyys (3%), talouskasvu rohisee ja rupl an tie eeku paranee. Mixei tästä puhuta, vaan sensijaan siteerataan jotain ryssävihamielistä raakkujaa, joka väittää lainausmerkeissä että "Venäjän talous on pankrotin partaalla". Oravat puhuvat ristiin, eikö teistäkin? No se on tyypillistä kun porukat eivät ymmärrä toisiaan, sanoisi tähän viestintäasiantuntijamme Nilqvist.
ellauri275.html on line 689: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/79/Joseph_Stalin_with_daughter_Svetlana%2C_1935.jpg/500px-Joseph_Stalin_with_daughter_Svetlana%2C_1935.jpg" />
ellauri275.html on line 692: Allilujeva rakastui 16-vuotiaana juutalaissyntyiseen elokuvaohjaajaan Aleksei Kapl eriin. Stalin ei hyväksynyt heidän romanssiaan, joten Kapl er lähetettiin pakkotyöhön Siperiaan ja sen jälkeen Vorkutan teollisuuskaupunkiin nykyiseen Komin tasavaltaan lähelle napapiiriä. 17-vuotiaana Allilujeva rakastui Grigori Morozoviin, joka opiskeli Moskovan yliopistossa. He menivät naimisiin 1945 Stalinin vastahakoisuudesta huolimatta, eikä tämä halunnut tavata Morozovia. Allilujeva synnytti pojan Josifin, ja pariskunta erosi vuonna 1947. Allilujevan seuraava puoliso oli Juri Ždanov, jonka isä oli tunnettu neuvostoliittolainen poliitikko ja Stalinin oikea käsi Andrei Ždanov, joka oli Suomessa rauhanteon jälkeen valvontakomission johtaja. He menivät naimisiin vuonna 1949 ja saivat vuonna 1950 tyttären Jekaterinan. Tämäkin liitto purkautui myöhemmin. Ollessaan sairaalassa 1963 Allilujeva tapasi intialaisen kommunistin Brajesh Singhin, joka oli käymässä Moskovassa. Singh oli hyväkäytöksinen idealisti, mutta kärsi vakavista sairauksista, kuten keuhkoputken tulehduksesta ja keuhkolaajentumasta. Brajeshin ja Allilujevan romanssi syttyi, kun pariskunta lomaili Mustanmeren rannalla Sotšissa. Singh palasi Moskovaan vuonna 1965 ja toimi tulkkina. Heidän ei sallittu avioitua. Singh kuoli vuonna 1966, ja Allilujeva sai luvan lähteä viemään Singhin tuhkaa Gangesjokeen. Ollessaan Intiassa kaksi kuukautta hän kiintyi maan tapoihin. Allilujeva piti Singhiä puolisonaan, vaikka he eivät menneet naimisiin.
ellauri275.html on line 708: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/0a/MhairethZeribaTikitt.jpg" />
ellauri275.html on line 709: A zariba (from Arabic: زَرِيْـبَـة, romanized: zarībah, lit. 'cattle-pen') is a fence which is made of thorns. Historically, it was used to defend settlements or property against perpetrators in Sudan and neighbouring pl aces in Africa. An exampl e would be a pen to protect cattle and other livestock from predators such as lions, albeit often unsuccessfully.
ellauri276.html on line 37: KYNTÄJIÄ play:none">Kyntöä
ellauri276.html on line 38: plough-farmer-tilling-furrowing.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri276.html on line 339: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/97/Joseph_Campbell_%28cropped%29.png" height="200"/>
ellauri276.html on line 341: ploads/sites/6/2016/12/222004FS_SP006-e1674425296561.jpg" height="200" />
ellauri276.html on line 371: I will go with my Father a-pl oughing Lähden Isäni kanssa kyntämään
ellauri276.html on line 417: With my pl ough. aurallani ruskeaksi.
ellauri276.html on line 445: Kaksi vuotta ensimmäisen kokoelmansa julkaisemisen jälkeen hän ei ollut vielä tehnyt merkittävää vaikutusta. The Times Literary Suppl ement kuvaili häntä "nuoreksi irlantilaiseksi runoilijaksi, joka lupaa enemmän kuin saavutuksia", ja The Spectator kommentoi, että "kuten muutkin Russellin ihailemat runoilijat, hän kirjoittaa paljon parempaa proosaa kuin runoutta. Kavanaghin sanoitukset ovat suurimmaksi osaksi lieviä ja konventionaalisia, helposti nautittavia, mutta melkein yhtä helposti unohdettavia."
ellauri276.html on line 455: Of the deep ravine where can be seen the worth of passion´s pl edge,
ellauri276.html on line 497: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/1/17/Patrick.Kavanagh.by.Patrick.Swift.jpg" />
ellauri276.html on line 528: Tunnetuin "Plowman´s Tale" sisältyi Chaucer´s Worksin painettuihin painoksiin. Se on selkeästi Wycliffite anti-veljestarina, joka on kirjoitettu n. 1400 ja levitettiin lollardien keskuudessa. Joskus nimeltään The Compl aynte of the Ploughman, se on 1380 riviä pitkä, ja se koostuu kahdeksanrivisista säikeistä ( rimimalli ABABBCBC, joissakin muunnelmissa, jotka viittaavat interpolointiin), kuten Chaucerin " Munkin tarina ". "The Plowman´s Tale" -elokuvassa ei ole selkeää sisäistä/suunnitteluyhteyttä Chaucer´s Canterbury Talesin tai Piers Plowmanin kanssa. Anthony Wotton, joka oli luultavasti vuoden 1606 "The Ploughman´s Tale" -julkaisun toimittaja, ehdotti, että "The Ploughman´s Tale" viittaa Jack Upl andiin tai todennäköisemmin Pierce the Ploughman´s Credeen, koska "Plowman´s Tale" on päähenkilö. sanoo: "Freresistä olen kertonut ennenkin / Creden tekemisessä..." (1065–66). Plowman´s Tale lainaa myös paljon Credestä.
ellauri276.html on line 569: VIDEO
ellauri276.html on line 574: A pl oughman dresses fine, he drinks strong beer, ale, and wine, Kyntäjä pukeutuu hyvin, hän juo vahvaa olutta, olutta ja viiniä,
ellauri276.html on line 576: Pretty maids don't think amiss a pl oughman for to kiss, Kauniit piiat eivät usko, että kyntäjä suutelee
ellauri276.html on line 579: A pl oughman in his shirt he compl etely does his work, Paidassa kyntäjä, hän tekee työnsä täysin,
ellauri276.html on line 592: A pl oughman is always a-dry, a-dry, a-dry, Kyntäjä on aina kuiva, kuiva,
ellauri276.html on line 593: A pl oughman is always a-dry. Kyntäjä on aina kuiva.
ellauri276.html on line 603: Here we are on familiar ground, for the beginning is that of the well-known Condescending Lass, often printed on broadsides, and not infrequently met with in the mouths of country singers to this day. The Condescending Lass belongs to a sizeable family of songs on the theme “I wouldn't marry a …”. In it the girl reviews men of various trades, and rejects them all until she finds one whom she will deign to consider. But the present version loses sight of this theme, and from verse two onwards forgets all about the persnickety girl, settling down to a eulogy of the pl oughman's trade, though here and there the words still recall those of The Condescending Lass. For the sake of coherence we have abandoned Mr Burstow's first verse and given it another title (he called it: Pretty Wench). The Taverners Folk Group sang The Ploughman in 1974 on their Folk Heritage album Times of Old England. They noted:
ellauri276.html on line 608: Turning over frozen earth in dark January days behind a horse drawn or an ox drawn pl ough, must have been back breaking labour. The hours were long, pay was poor. A pl oughman at the Alnwick Hiring Fair of spring 1819 for instance, was offered merely bed and food as payment for his fee for six months work. In the depression of that year, the pl oughman had no choice, yet, these pl oughmen appeared to enjoy their job and approached life with a sense of honest reality and humour. Their songs are nearly always cheerful. Cyril Tawney sang The Ploughman in 1974 on the Argo anthology The World of the Countryside. Jon Loomes sang The Ploughman in 2005 on his Fellside CD Fearful Symmetry. He noted:
ellauri276.html on line 614: VIDEO
ellauri276.html on line 620: Devil and The pl oughman
ellauri276.html on line 628: The Devil he came to the old man at pl ough, (whistle) Pirupa tuli vanhan miehen luo kynnökselle, (pilli)
ellauri276.html on line 670: https://www.letssingit.com/historical-folk-lyrics-the-devil-and-the-pl oughman-g9dd5cr
ellauri276.html on line 787: The pl oughman, going up and down, Auraaja, joka kulkee ylös ja alas,
ellauri276.html on line 799: The pl oughman measures out my days. Auramies mittaa päiväni.
ellauri276.html on line 811: And, as the unknowing pl oughman climbs Ja kun tietämätön auramies kiipeää
ellauri276.html on line 870: AS I watch´d the pl oughman pl oughing, Kun näin kuinka kyntäjä kynsi,
ellauri276.html on line 878: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture; web-share" allowfullscreen>
ellauri276.html on line 890: VIDEO
ellauri276.html on line 894: VIDEO
ellauri276.html on line 895: VIDEO
ellauri276.html on line 896: VIDEO
ellauri276.html on line 901: VIDEO
ellauri276.html on line 909: In their fate-like tread with the cleaving pl ough, Kohtalokasta pintaa pilkkovaa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1016: “You have pl oughed an acre, I´ll swear and I´ll vow, "Olet kyntänyt hehtaarin, vannon ja vannon,
ellauri276.html on line 1017: You have pl oughed an acre, I´ll swear and I´ll vow, olet kyntänyt hehtaarin, minä vannon ja lupaan,
ellauri276.html on line 1018: Then you´re all jolly fellows that follows the pl ough. sitten olette kaikki iloisia kavereita joka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1038: We´re all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. Olemme kaikki iloisia auraa seuraavia tovereita.
ellauri276.html on line 1043: We´re all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. Olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1046: And trip o´er the pl ain boys so merrily-O, Ja kompastumme tavallisten poikien yli niin iloisesti - Oi,
ellauri276.html on line 1052: Well you´ve not pl oughed an acre, I´ll swear and I´ll vow. Et ole kyntänyt hehtaariakaan, minä vannon ja vannon.
ellauri276.html on line 1053: And you´re all idle fellows that follow the pl ough.” Ja te olette kaikki toimettomia miehiä, jotka seuraa auraa."
ellauri276.html on line 1055: I stepped up to him and made this repl y, Astuin hänen luokseen ja vastasin:
ellauri276.html on line 1056: “We have all pl oughed an acre, so you tell a lie. "Olemme kaikki kyntäneet hehtaarin, joten valehtelet.
ellauri276.html on line 1057: We have all pl oughed an acre, I´ll swear and I´ll vow, Olemme kaikki kyntäneet hehtaarin, vannon ja vannomme,
ellauri276.html on line 1058: And we´re all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough.” ja olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa."
ellauri276.html on line 1068: For you´re all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. sillä te olette kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa .
ellauri276.html on line 1078: We ain´t pl oughed an acre I´ll swear and I´ll vow Emme ole kyntäneet hehtaariakaan, vannon ja vannon
ellauri276.html on line 1079: Oh, you´re damned idle fellows as follows the pl ough Voi, te olette hemmetin joutilaita, ketkä seuraa auraa
ellauri276.html on line 1084: ´Cause we´re damned clever fellows as follows the pl ough. koska olemme pirun fiksuja miehiä ketkä seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1089: ´Cause we´re damned hungry fellows as follows the pl ough. koska olemme hemmetin nälkäisiä, ketkä seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1092: And a pl entiful harvest in time we will yield. ja runsaan sadon aikanamme annamme.
ellauri276.html on line 1093: We pl ough all our furrows all in a straight row Kynämme kaikki vaot peräkkäin
ellauri276.html on line 1094: ´Cause we´re damned clever fellows as follows the pl ough. koska olemme pirun fiksuja miehiä ketkä seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1099: ´Cause we´re damned thirsty fellows as follows the pl ough. koska olemme pirun janoisia kavereita, ketkä seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1109: That we're all jolly fellows that follows the pl ough. että olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1114: That we're all jolly fellows that follows the pl ough. että olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1123: You have not pl oughed your acre, I'll swear and I vow Et ole kyntänyt eekkeriäsi, minä vannon ja vannon
ellauri276.html on line 1124: That you're all idle fellows as follows the pl ough!” että olette kaikki joutilaita, ketkä seuraa auraa!"
ellauri276.html on line 1126: And then I turned around and I made this repl y, Ja sitten käännyin ympäri ja vastasin:
ellauri276.html on line 1127: “We've all pl oughed our acre; You tells a big lie!” "Olemme kaikki kyntäneet hehtaarimme; Sinä kerrot suuren valheen!"
ellauri276.html on line 1137: That we're all jolly fellows that follows the pl ough. että olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1145: And into our stable, we merrily repl y. Ja talliimme, vastaamme iloisesti.
ellauri276.html on line 1147: We're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1152: We're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. Olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1156: And trip o'er the pl ain, boys, more merrily and bold Ja retkeilemme tasangolla, pojat, iloisemmin ja rohkeammin
ellauri276.html on line 1161: You've not pl oughed an acre this long summer's day. Et ole kyntänyt hehtaariakaan tänä pitkänä kesäpäivänä.
ellauri276.html on line 1162: You've not pl oughed an acre, I'll swear and I'll vow Et ole kyntänyt hehtaariakaan, minä vannon ja vannon
ellauri276.html on line 1163: And you're all idle fellows that follow the pl ough.” , ja te olette kaikki joutilaita, jotka seuraa auraa."
ellauri276.html on line 1165: I stepped right up to him and made this repl y, Astuin hänen luokseen ja vastasin:
ellauri276.html on line 1166: “We've all pl oughed an acre, you tell a damn lie "Olemme kaikki kyntäneet hehtaarin, sinä valehtelet.
ellauri276.html on line 1167: We have all pl oughed an acre, I'll swear and I'll vow Olemme kaikki kyntäneet hehtaarin, vannon ja vannon
ellauri276.html on line 1168: And we're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough.” ja olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraav auraa."
ellauri276.html on line 1178: You're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. Olette kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1188: We're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. Olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1193: We're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. Olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1195: We harness our horses, and to pl ough then we go Valjastamme hevosemme ja sitten lähdemme kyntämään,
ellauri276.html on line 1198: As nimbly we step o'er the pl ains down below. Yhtä ketterästi astumme alas tasangoilla.
ellauri276.html on line 1201: “You've not pl oughed an acre this long summer's day. "Et ole kyntänyt hehtaariakaan tänä pitkänä kesäpäivänä.
ellauri276.html on line 1202: You've not pl oughed an acre, and I swear and I vow Et ole kyntänyt eekkeriä, ja vannon ja vannon, että
ellauri276.html on line 1203: You're all idle fellows that follow the pl ough.” olette kaikki joutilaita, jotka seuraa auraa."
ellauri276.html on line 1205: I stepped up to him and made this repl y, Astuin hänen luokseen ja vastasin:
ellauri276.html on line 1206: “We have all pl oughed an acre, so you tell a darn' lie "Olemme kaikki kyntäneet hehtaarin, joten sinä valehtelet.
ellauri276.html on line 1207: We have all pl oughed an acre, and I swear and I vow Olemme kaikki kyntäneet hehtaarin, ja vannon ja vannon,
ellauri276.html on line 1208: We're not idle fellows that follow the pl ough.” ettemme ole joutilaita, jotka seuraa auraa."
ellauri276.html on line 1218: We're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. Olemme kaikki iloisia auraa seuraavia miehiä.
ellauri276.html on line 1228: We're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. Olemme kaikki iloisia tovereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1233: We're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. Olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1238: We're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough. Olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1242: For you haven't pl oughed an acre, I'll swear and I'll vow, Sillä ette ole kyntäneet hehtaariakaan, minä vannon ja vannon,
ellauri276.html on line 1243: And you're damn idle fellows that follow the pl ough.” ja te olette helvetin joutilaita, jotka seuraa auraa."
ellauri276.html on line 1245: But I turned round on him and made this repl y, Mutta käännyin hänen puoleensa ja vastasin:
ellauri276.html on line 1246: “We've all pl oughed our acres so you tell a lie. "Olemme kaikki kyntäneet hehtaarimme, joten sinä valehtelet.
ellauri276.html on line 1247: We've all pl oughed our acre, I'll swear and I'll vow, Olemme kaikki kyntäneet hehtaarimme, vannon ja vannomme,
ellauri276.html on line 1248: And we're all jolly fellows that follow the pl ough.” ja olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa."
ellauri276.html on line 1257: But tell him quite pl ainly with a curse and a bow vaan sanokaa hänelle aivan selvästi kirouksella ja kumartaen,
ellauri276.html on line 1258: That we're all damn good fellows that follow the pl ough. Etme olemme kaikki iloisia kavereita, jotka seuraa auraa.
ellauri276.html on line 1267: VIDEO
ellauri276.html on line 1268: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture; web-share" allowfullscreen>
ellauri276.html on line 1287: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d4/Radclyffe_Hall%2C_ca._1930.jpg/440px-Radclyffe_Hall%2C_ca._1930.jpg" />
ellauri276.html on line 1307: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/76/Ruth_Bader_Ginsburg_2016_portrait.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri276.html on line 1308: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f2/Amy_Coney_Barrett_official_portrait.jpg/497px-Amy_Coney_Barrett_official_portrait.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri277.html on line 37: GET A HUMP ON YOU! play:none">Kyttyröitä
ellauri277.html on line 38: ploads/2014/02/camel-cigarettes-pack.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri277.html on line 42: On the evening of December 20, 1900, a suspicious fire destroyed the Buies Creek Academy and all the buildings except for the large wooden tabernacle. Awakened at 3:30 a.m. to witness the destruction, J.A. Campbell recalled: "When I ran up to the fire, the terrible fire, that was burning down chances for poor boys and girls, and I knew that I could not build again ... the flames that destroyed the labor of years [...] the only hope for hundreds of boys and girls was being swept away, I could not bear up longer [...] When they asked me my pl ans, I said, "Well, there's no chance to go on."
ellauri277.html on line 64: VIDEO
ellauri277.html on line 65: Kahlil Gibran pl oughman - top education!
ellauri277.html on line 77: Then a pl oughman said, Speak to us of Work.
ellauri277.html on line 134: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/60/Mary_Haskell_by_Kahlil_Gibran.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri277.html on line 135: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/34/Kahlil_Gibran_1913.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri277.html on line 169: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/54/Ages_of_Women_by_Kahlil_Gibran_-_Soumaya.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri277.html on line 193: oli riipustettu reunaan tikkukirjaimilla Melvixen resuisexi selattuun kappaleeseen tästä Kallen kuolemattomasta runopl äjäyxestä:
ellauri277.html on line 223: Romantics such as the Italian poet, novelist, and short-story writer Gabriele D’Annunzio and the Belgian essayist Maurice Maeterlinck influenced Gibran most deepl y.
ellauri277.html on line 229: In November 1902 Gibran wrote to Peabody, and she invited him to a party held at her house two weeks later. An intense pl atonic relationship resulted, though Gibran seems to have wanted it to progress to a sexual one. He visited her regularly; they went to musical and artistic events together; they wrote to each other often; and she encouraged his writing and his art. She gave him the nickname that he later used as the title of his most famous book: “the Prophet.” In October 1903 Gibran wrote something in a letter to Peabody that angered her, and their relationship cooled.
ellauri277.html on line 231: Gibran’s relationship with Peabody ended compl etely with her marriage in 1906. He then began a secret affair with a pianist, Gertrude Barrie, who, like Peabody, was several years his senior. During this period Haskell introduced him to an aspiring French actress, Émilie Michel, who taught French at Haskell’s school, and the two fell in love. In 1908 Michel suffered an ectopic pregnancy and had an abortion. The relationship waned and ultimately ended, a victim of Michel’s ambitions for a career on the stage.
ellauri277.html on line 242: Gibran’s first book in English, The Madman: His Parables and Poems, was compl eted in 1917; it was brought out in 1918 by the young literary publisher Alfred A. Knopf, who went on to publish all of Gibran’s English works. A gold mine! A goose laying golden eggs! Way to go Alfred!
ellauri277.html on line 246: Gibran’s masterpiece, The Prophet, was published in September 1923. The earliest references to a mysterious prophet counseling his peopl e before returning to his island home can be found in Haskell’s journal from 1912. Gibran worked on it from time to time and had finished much of it by 1919. He seems to have written it in Arabic and then translated it into English. As with most of his English books, Haskell acted as his editor, correcting Gibran’s chronically defective spelling and punctuation but also suggesting improvements in the wording.
ellauri277.html on line 248: The work begins with the prophet Almustafa preparing to leave the city of Orphalese, where he has lived for twelve years, to return to the island of his birth. The peopl e of the city gather and beg him not to leave, but the seeress Almitra, knowing that his ship has come for him, asks him instead to tell them his truths. The peopl e ask him about the great themes of human life: love, marriage, children, giving, eating and drinking, and many others, concluding with death. Almustafa speaks of each of the themes in sober, sonorous aphorisms grouped into twenty-six short chapters. As in earlier books, Gibran illustrated The Prophet with his own drawings, adding to the power of the work.
ellauri277.html on line 250: The Prophet received tepid reviews in Poetry and The Bookman, an enthusiastic review in the Chicago Evening Post, and little else. On the other hand, the public reception was intense. It began with a trickle of grateful letters; the first edition sold out in two months; 13,000 copies a year were sold during the Great Depression, 60,000 in 1944, and 1,000,000 by 1957. Many millions of copies were sold in the following decades, making Gibran the best-selling American poet of the twentieth century. It is clear that the book deepl y moved many peopl e. When critics finally noticed it, they were baffled by the public response; they dismissed the work as sentimental, overwritten, artificial, and affected.
ellauri277.html on line 254: In 1925 the poet Barbara Young (pseudonym of Henrietta Breckenridge (!!!) Boughton) became Gibran’s secretary. She remained with Gibran for the rest of his life and pl ayed a major role in events after his death.
ellauri277.html on line 264: Gibran has generally been dismissed as sentimental and mawkishly [imelän] mystical. Nevertheless, his works are widely read and are regarded as serious literature by peopl e who do not often read such literature. The unconventional beauty of his language and the moral earnestness of his ideas allow him to speak to a broad audience as only a handful of other twentieth-century American poets have. The sad fact is that a large majority of these monkeys are sentimental and mawkishly mystical.
ellauri277.html on line 274: Тhe article discusses the role of religious values in the context of spiritual safety of society. The value content of the concept of spiritual security is substantiated. It is proved that the system of spiritual values and moral norms is one of the important conditions for ensuring the spiritual security of society. The basic principl es of providing spiritual security and suggested of definition the relevant concepts.
ellauri277.html on line 286: 1. Abramov, V.I. (2004), Duhovnict´ suspil´st- 7. Leontiev, D.A. (1996), "Value as an interdiscipl inary
ellauri277.html on line 400: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ef/4_Abrahamic_symbols.svg/300px-4_Abrahamic_symbols.svg.png" />
ellauri277.html on line 411: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/82/Picture_of_Abdul-Baha.jpg/220px-Picture_of_Abdul-Baha.jpg" />
ellauri277.html on line 460: Kuten käy ilmi, se, mitä Joker tarjoaa, ei ole vapautta tai edes valinnanvaraa. Elokuvan hölmöt toimivat vapaimmin, kun he voivat kiertää Jokerin ja ohittaa hänen vääriä "valintojaan", noudattaen sen sijaan impl isiittisesti Moosexen taulujen ohjeistuxia. Mutta kun he eivät voi, heidän teoistaan tulee tahattomia. He toimivat pakotuksesta, pelosta ja välttämättömyydestä. Jokeriakin näyttää ohjaavan hellittämätön anarkkinen agenda, josta hänkään ei saa mitään iloa tai helpotusta, mitä nyt jotain turhaa hahatusta. Hän on oman suunnittelunsa tai kenties oman hulluutensa vanki. Heh, hm, baptistisella tulkinnalla joka hemmetin heppuli on oman päänsä vanki, paizi ne jotka noudattaa johtoportaan ohjeistuxia, mikä antaa niille täyden vastuuvapauden.
ellauri277.html on line 485: Sofia on kyllä vitun vaarallinen ja pahansuopakin. S.Nurmi vetää huumeita ja wiixeen huumeämmiä. Mixi suomalaisista poliiseista on tullut pahoja? Jari Aarnio kai näytti esimerkkiä. Reinikainen venelakkeineen oli paljon kivempi. No nyt on vedetty läpi kuitenkin koko S.KARPPI sarja, pimeitä kellareita on saatu kurkun täydeltä, ja huonosti motivoituja symbolisia paloittelumurhia pl us muita vainaita. Tutustuttu varmaan kaikkiin stadin hylätyihin teollisuusmestoihin, nähty vastenmielisiä "POLIISI" siiroja valtavilla automaattiaseilla tunkeutumassa pahaa-aavistamattomien pahisten kotehin. Kenen mielestä tää voi olla jotain viihdettä? Kai laahuxen jonka oma elämä on totaalisen pimeetä, koska se on syvältä perseestä.
ellauri278.html on line 37: Tykkivenedipl omatiaa play:none">Kansanmurhia
ellauri278.html on line 38: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/87/No-nb_bldsa_1c100_Georgy_Chicherin_and_Maxim_Litvinov.jpg/440px-No-nb_bldsa_1c100_Georgy_Chicherin_and_Maxim_Litvinov.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri278.html on line 46: plomacy">Источник
ellauri278.html on line 50: Weikko Huovinen oli valmis hyväxymään suoraviivaisen vahvemman oikeuden rynkästä naapurien tupaan karmit kaulassa, mutta sitä se ei voinut sulattaa että käytetään kieronlaista tykkivenedipl omatiaa kuten Virossa. Big fat hairy difference, sanon mä.
ellauri278.html on line 66: Stalin oli hieman keskikorkeampi, rakennettu hyvin suhteellisesti, pidetty suorana, ei kumartunut. En ole koskaan nähnyt hänen punastuvan, hänen ihonsa on maanläheisen harmaa. Kasvot pienillä naarmuilla. Hänen hiuksensa on siististi kammattu taakse, mustat, vahvan harmaat. Silmät ovat harmaanruskeat. Joskus, kun hän halusi, ne olivat ystävälliset, jopa ilman hymyä, mutta hymyillen - kiehtovan hellästi. Joskus vihassa ne lävistävät. Ärsytyksessä kasvoille ilmestyi pieniä punaisia täpl iä.
ellauri278.html on line 74: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/0f/Convention_of_commanders_%28Retouched_photograph_in_the_Soviet_period%29._1921.jpg" />
ellauri278.html on line 146: VIDEO
ellauri278.html on line 161: Shoot these rabid dogs. Death to this gang who hide their ferocious teeth, their eagle claws, from the peopl e! Down with that vulture Trotsky, from whose mouth a bloody venom drips, putrefying the great ideals of Marxism! ... Down with these abject animals! Let's put an end once and for all to these miserable hybrids of foxes and pigs, these stinking corpses! Let's exterminate the mad dogs of capitalism, who want to tear to pieces the flower of our new Soviet nation! Let's push the bestial hatred they bear our leaders back down their own throats!
ellauri278.html on line 163: He often punctuated speeches with phrases like "Dogs of the Fascist bourgeoisie", "mad dogs of Trotskyism", "dregs of society", "decayed peopl e", "terrorist thugs and degenerates", and "accursed vermin". This dehumanization aided in what historian Arkady Vaksberg calls "a hitherto unknown type of trial where there was not the slightest need for evidence: what evidence did you need when you were dealing with 'stinking carrion' and 'mad dogs'."
ellauri278.html on line 165: British dipl omat Sir Frank Roberts, who served as British chargé d'affaires in Moscow from February 1945 to October 1947, described him as follows:
ellauri278.html on line 190: Chicherin and Litvinov were temperamental opposites and became rivals. Chicherin had a cultivated, polished personal style but held strongly anti-Western opinions. He sought to hold Soviet Russia aloof from dipl omatic deal-making with capitalist powers.
ellauri278.html on line 192: A distant relative of Aleksandr Pushkin, Georgy Chicherin was born into an old noble family. He was born on the estate of his uncle, Boris Chicherin, in Karaul, Tambov. His father, Vasily N. Chicherin, was a dipl omat empl oyed by the Foreign Office of the Russian Empire.
ellauri278.html on line 196: Chicherin followed a pro-German foreign policy in line with his anti-British attitudes, which he had developed during his time in the Foreign Ministry, when Britain was blocking Russian expansion in Asia. Chicherin is thought to have had more phone conversations with Lenin than anyone else. When Joseph Stalin repl aced Lenin in 1924, Chicherin remained foreign minister, and Stalin valued his opinions.
ellauri278.html on line 198: Chicherin pl ayed a major role in establishing formal relations with China and in designing the Kremlin´s policy on China. He focused on the Chinese Eastern Railway, Manchuria, and the Mongolian issue.
ellauri278.html on line 200: Chicherin was an eccentric, with obsessive work habits. Alexander Barmine, who worked in the Peopl e´s Commissariat for Foreign Affairs, noted that "Chicherin was a workaholic with peculiar habits. His workroom was compl etely buried in books, newspaper and documents. He used to patter into our room in his shirt sleeves, wearing a large silk handkerchief round his neck and slippers adorned with metal buckles ... which, for comfort´s sake, he never troubled to fasten, making a clicking noise on the floor." In 1930 Chicherin was formally repl aced by his deputy, Maxim Litvinov. A continuing terminal illness burdened his last years, which forced him away from his circle of friends and active work and led to an early death.
ellauri278.html on line 204: Maxim Maximovich Litvinov (Russian pronunciation: [mɐkˈsʲim mɐkˈsʲiməvʲɪtɕ lʲɪˈtvʲinəf]; born Meir Henoch Wallach; 17 July 1876–31 December 1951) was a Russian revolutionary, and prominent Soviet statesman and dipl omat who served as Peopl e´s Commissar for Foreign Affairs from 1930 to 1939. Hizi sekin oli jutku!
ellauri278.html on line 210: Litvinov moved to England in 1910 and lived there for eight years. In 1912, he repl aced Lenin as the Bolshevik representative on the International Socialist Bureau. In England, Litvinov met and in 1916 married Ivy Low, the daughter of a Jewish university professor.
ellauri278.html on line 212: In January 1918, Litvinov addressed the Labour Party Conference, praising the achievements of the Revolution. Alexander Kerensky, the leader of the democratic Russian Provisional Government that had repl aced the Tsar and was overthrown by Lenin, was welcomed by the British government on a visit to London and also addressed the Labour Party Conference, criticising the dictatorship of Lenin’s government. Litvinov repl ied to Kerensky in the left-wing English press, criticising him as being supported by foreign powers and intending to restore capitalism. Later in 1918, the British government arrested Litvinov, ostensibly for having addressed public gatherings held in opposition to British intervention in the ongoing Russian Civil War.
ellauri278.html on line 216: On 6 February 1933, Litvinov made the most-significant speech of his career, in which he tried to define aggression. He stated the internal situation of a country, alleged maladministration, possible danger to foreign residents, and civil unrest in a neighbouring country were not justifications for war. This speech became the authority when war was justified. British politician Anthony Eden had said; "to try to define aggression was a trap for the innocent and protection for the guilty". In 1946, the British Government supported Litvinov’s definition of aggression by accusing the Soviet Union of not compl ying with Litvinov’s definition of aggression. Finland made similar criticisms against the Soviet Union in 1939.
ellauri278.html on line 224: In 1933, Litvinov was instrumental in winning a long-sought formal dipl omatic recognition of the Soviet government by the United States. US President Franklin Roosevelt sent comedian Harpo Marx to the Soviet Union as a goodwill ambassador. Isosetä Karl oli näät disponibiliteetissa. Litvinov and Marx became friends and performed a routine on stage together. Litvinov also facilitated the acceptance of the Soviet Union into the League of Nations, where he represented his country from 1934 to 1938. Litvinov has been considered to have concentrated on taking strong measures against Italy, Japan and Germany, and being little interested in other matters.
ellauri278.html on line 226: After the 1938 Munich Agreement, German state media derided Maxim Litvinov for his Jewish ancestry, referring to him as "Finkelstein-Litvinov". The Munich Agreement (Czech: Mnichovská dohoda; Slovak: Mníchovská dohoda; German: Münchner Abkommen) was an agreement concluded at Munich on 30 September 1938, by Nazi Germany, the United Kingdom, France, and Italy. The agreement provided for the German annexation of land on the border between Czechoslovakia and Germany called the Sudetenland, where more than three million peopl e, mainly ethnic Germans, lived. The pact is also known in "some areas" as the Munich Betrayal (Czech: Mnichovská zrada; Slovak: Mníchovská zrada), because of a previous 1924 alliance agreement and a 1925 military pact between France and the Czechoslovak Republic.
ellauri278.html on line 227: An emergency meeting of the main European powers – not including Czechoslovakia, although their representatives were present in the town, or the Soviet Union, an ally to both France and Czechoslovakia – took pl ace in Munich, Germany, on 29–30 September 1938. An agreement was quickly reached on Hitler´s terms, and signed by the leaders of Germany, France, Britain, and Italy. The Czechoslovak mountainous borderland that the powers offered to appease Germany had not only marked the natural border between the Czech state and the Germanic states since the early Middle Ages, but it also presented a major natural obstacle to any possible German attack. Having been strengthened by significant border fortifications, the Sudetenland was of absolute strategic importance to Czechoslovakia.
ellauri278.html on line 229: On 30 September, Czechoslovakia yielded to the combination of military pressure by Germany, Poland, and Hungary, and dipl omatic pressure by the United Kingdom and France, and agreed to give up territory to Germany on Munich terms. Then, on 1 October, Czechoslovakia also accepted Polish territorial demands. Much of Europe celebrated the Munich Agreement, as they considered it a way to prevent a major war on the continent. Adolf Hitler announced that it was his last territorial claim in Northern Europe. Today, the Munich Agreement is widely regarded as a failed act of appeasement, and the term has become a byword for the futility of appeasing expansionist totalitarian states.
ellauri278.html on line 231: On 3 May 1939, Stalin repl aced Litvinov, who was closely identified with the anti-German position, with Vyacheslav Molotov. At a prearranged meeting, Stalin said: "The Soviet Government intended to improve its relations with Hitler and if possible sign a pact with Nazi Germany. As a Jew and an avowed opponent of such a policy, Litvinov stood in the way." Litvinov argued and banged on the table. Stalin then demanded Litvinov to sign a letter of resignation. On the night of Litvinov´s dismissal, NKVD troops surrounded the offices of the Commissariat of Foreign Affairs. The telephone at Litvinov´s dacha was disconnected and the following morning, Molotov, Georgy Malenkov, and Lavrenty Beria arrived at the commissariat to inform Litvinov of his dismissal. Many of Litvinov´s aides were arrested and beaten, possibly to extract compromising information.
ellauri278.html on line 235: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/MolotovRibbentropStalin.jpg/800px-MolotovRibbentropStalin.jpg" />
ellauri278.html on line 240: The imperialists in these two countries had done everything they could to goad Hitler’s Germany against the Soviet Union by secret deals and provocative moves. In the circumstances the Soviet Union could either accept German proposals for a non-aggression treaty and thus secure a period of peace in which to redouble preparations to repulse the aggressor; or turn down Germany’s proposals and let the warmongers in the Western camp push the Soviet Union into an armed conflict with Germany in unfavourable circumstances and in a setting of compl ete isolation. In this situation the Soviet Government was compelled to make the difficult choice and conclude a non-aggression treaty with Germany. I, too, would probably have concluded a pact with Germany although a bit differently.
ellauri278.html on line 242: The repl acement of Litvinov with Molotov significantly increased Stalin´s freedom to manoeuver in foreign policy. The dismissal of Litvinov, whose Jewish background was viewed disfavorably by Nazi Germany, removed an obstacle to negotiations with Germany. Stalin immediately directed Molotov to "purge the ministry of Jews". Recalling Stalin´s order, Molotov commented: "Thank God for these words! Jews formed an absolute majority in the leadership and among the ambassadors. It wasn´t good."
ellauri278.html on line 244: Given Litvinov´s prior attempts to create an anti-fascist coalition, association with the doctrine of collective security with France and Britain, and pro-Western orientation by Kremlin standards, his dismissal indicated the existence of a Soviet option of rapprochement with Germany. Molotov´s appointment was a signal to Germany the USSR would negotiate. The dismissal also signaled to France and Britain the existence of a potential negotiation option with Germany. One British official wrote Litvinov´s disappearance meant the loss of an admirable technician or shock-absorber, while Molotov´s modus operandi was "more truly Bolshevik than dipl omatic or cosmopolitan".
ellauri278.html on line 246: With regard to the signing of the Molotov–Ribbentrop Pact with secret protocols dividing Eastern Europe three months later, Hitler told military commanders; "Litvinov´s repl acement was decisive". A German official told the Soviet Ambassador Hitler was pl eased Litvinov´s repl acement Molotov was not Jewish.
ellauri278.html on line 248: In the 21-month period between the declaration of war by France and Britain, and the invasion of the Soviet Union by Germany, Ivy Litvinov describes this period of her life. She said the family spent their time with their daughter-in-law in their dacha 27 kilometres (17 mi) from Moscow and outside school holidays in the family apartment in Moscow, when they spent long weekends in the country. For two years, the family pl ayed bridge, read music, and went on long walks in the countryside with their two dogs.
ellauri278.html on line 250: 1941 Litvinov was definitively given the sack. LItvinov was livid. Stalin rejected everything Litvinov had said. When Stalin stopped speaking, Litvinov asked: "Does that mean you consider me an enemy of the peopl e?" Stalin answered: "We do not consider you an enemy of the peopl e, but too honest a revolutionary".
ellauri278.html on line 254: Early in November 1941, Litvinov was summoned to see Stalin and told his services were required as ambassador to the United States. In the US, the appointment was met with enthusiasm. The New York Times stated: "Stalin has decided to pl ace his ablest and most forceful dipl omat and one who enjoys greater prestige in this country. He is known as a man of exceptional ability, adroit as well as forceful. It is believed that Stalin, in designating him for the ambassadorship, felt Litvinov could exercise real influence in Washington."
ellauri278.html on line 258: The highlight of Litvinov’s eighteen months ambassadorship was the 25th celebration of the Russian Revolution on the 7 November 1942. 1,200 guests, representing all of the United Nations, entered the reception hall to shake hands with Litvinov. Russian vodka and a sturgeon from the Volga were suppl ied to the guests. Roosevelt became annoyed with Litvinov’s second-necklace zeal. He told Stalin to call in Litvinov.
ellauri278.html on line 264: In his reminiscences dictated to a supporter later in life, Vyacheslav Molotov—Litvinov´s repl acement as chief of foreign affairs and right-hand man of Joseph Stalin—said Litvinov was "intelligent" and "first rate" but said he and Stalin "didn´t trust him" and consequently "left him out of negotiations" with the United States during the war. Molotov called Litvinov "not a bad dipl omat—a good one" but also called him quite an opportunist who greatly sympathized with Leon Trotsky, Grigory Zinoviev, and Lev Kamenev. According to Molotov; Litvinov remained among the living in the Great Purge only by chance.
ellauri278.html on line 266: Vjatšeslav Mihailovitš Molotov (ven. Вячесла́в Миха́йлович Мо́лотов; 9. maaliskuuta (J: 25. helmikuuta) 1890 Kukarka, Venäjän keisarikunta – 8. marraskuuta 1986 Moskova, Venäjän SFNT, Neuvostoliitto) oli neuvostoliittolainen poliitikko ja dipl omaatti. Hänet tunnetaan erityisesti natsi-Saksan ulkoministerin Joachim von Ribbentropin kanssa vuonna 1939 allekirjoittamasta hyökkäämättömyyssopimuksesta, joka tunnetaan Molotov–Ribbentrop-sopimuksena. Molotov oli Aleksandra Kollontain ohella ainoita bolševikkien johtohahmoja, joka selvisi hengissä Stalinin vainoista. Niin ja (ehkä) Litvinov.
ellauri278.html on line 270: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/17/Molotov%2C_Stalin_and_Voroshilov%2C_1937.jpg" />
ellauri278.html on line 298: Alue on aivan hirveen näköinen, täynnä soita, lämpäreitä, hiilikaivoxia tai paremminkin avolouhoxia. Vanhat harppisakut ylpeilevät vielä sillä että kaivoivat sieltä aivan vitusti hiiltä ja pilasivat sillä koko pl aneetan. Jälellä on enää köyhiä maajusseja, mainoslehden jakajia, huumehörhöjä ja korruptoituneita skoudeja. Kellonvalaja Godunov oli vihannut kommunisteja koko ikänsä mutta nyt kun raha on ruotelissa... (SSH! Älä jatka!) Aivan hirveetä. Tollastako elämä on 21. vuosisadan heeboille? Ei käy kyllä kateexi. Niiden pitäis ryhdistäytyä ja aloittaa kommunismi uudestaan aivan alusta.
ellauri278.html on line 303: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/23/Polish_eagle_and_Soviet_soldier.JPG" />
ellauri278.html on line 314: VIDEO
ellauri278.html on line 315: VIDEO
ellauri278.html on line 316: VIDEO
ellauri278.html on line 322: Katyn muistetaan myös vuonna 2010 tapahtuneen lento-onnettomuuden yhteydestä, jossa oli Puolan presidentin Lech Kaczynskin johtama puolalainen valtuuskunta, joka lensi vierailemaan muistomerkkikompl eksissa Katynin verilöylyn 70-vuotispäivän yhteydessä - itse lento-onnettomuus. tapahtui Smolenskin lähellä. Neuvostoviranomaiset kiistävät osallisuutensa asiaan.
ellauri278.html on line 326: Limp Bizkit is an American rap rock band from Jacksonville, Florida. Its lineup consists of lead vocalist Fred Durst, drummer John Otto, guitarist Wes Borland, turntablist DJ Lethal and bassist Sam Rivers. The band's music is marked by Durst's angry vocal delivery and Borland's sonic experimentation. Borland's elaborate visual appearance, which includes face and body paint, masks, and uniforms, also pl ays a large role in Limp Bizkit´s live shows. The band has been nominated for three Grammy Awards, sold 40 million records worldwide, and won several other awards. The band has released 26 singles, the most notable of which include "Nookie", "Re-Arranged", "Break Stuff", "Take a Look Around", "Rollin' (Air Raid Vehicle)." Formed in 1994, Limp Bizkit became popular pl aying in the Jacksonville underground music scene in the late 1990s. n October 28, 2021, Durst confirmed via Instagram that the band's sixth album – now titled Still Sucks – would be released on October 31, 2021. Durst's lyrics are often profane, scatological or angry. Much of Durst´s lyrical inspiration came from growing up and his personal life. I did it all for the nookie [slang for sexual intercourse].
ellauri278.html on line 328: 12 km Katynista itään, Dneprin oikeaa rantaa pitkin, sijaitsee yksi Venäjän suurimmista arkeologisista kompl ekseista - Gnezdovo, joka sisältää kaksi asutusta ja yli kymmenen hautakumpua (useita tuhansia hautoja). Kaikki muistomerkit kuuluvat IX - XI vuosisadoille.
ellauri278.html on line 331: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a5/The_Katyn_Massacre%2C_1940_HU106207.jpg/800px-The_Katyn_Massacre%2C_1940_HU106207.jpg" />
ellauri278.html on line 348: 21. huhtikuuta. Vankila-autojen nousu ja valmistautuminen lähtöön. Meitä kuljetetaan jonnekin autoissa. Mitä seuraavaksi? Päivä alkaa oudosti aamunkoitteessa. Kuljetus laatikoissa "varis" (pelottava). Meidät tuotiin jonnekin metsään, se näyttää kesämökiltä. Perusteellinen haku. He olivat kiinnostuneita vihkisormuksestani, he ottivat pois rupl aa, vyön, kynäveitsen, kellon, joka näytti 6:30 ...
ellauri278.html on line 363: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c3/The_Katyn_Massacre%2C_1940_HU106221.jpg" />
ellauri278.html on line 401: 24. kesäkuuta 2022 ilmestyi tieto, että Puolan lippu poistettiin Katynin muistomerkkikompl eksista. Katynin hallinto vahvisti, että 24. kesäkuuta "Puolan lipun puuttuminen havaittiin", mutta ohjasi muut toimittajien kysymykset Venäjän nykyhistorian museoon, jolle muistomerkki kuuluu. Smolenskin pormestari Andrei Borisov sanoi, että päätöksen teki kulttuuriministeriö. Ukrainan lippuakaan ei ole näkynyt.
ellauri278.html on line 410: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a7/P%C3%A4ts_prison.jpg/375px-P%C3%A4ts_prison.jpg" />
ellauri278.html on line 442: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Thompson-and-his-gun.jpg/270px-Thompson-and-his-gun.jpg" />
ellauri278.html on line 512: Lupavapaa. Näköisrepl ika jolla ei voi ampua
ellauri278.html on line 524: Yksi suurimpia tämän konepistoolin valtteja oli sen suuri rumpulipas, johon sai ladattua mukaan 71 patruunaa. Hyökkäyksen keskellä ei tarvinnut pysähtyä lataamaan asetta, kun rumpulippaaseen mahtui yli tupl amäärä ammuksia jopa verrattuna tavanomaiseen konepistoolin tankolippaaseen. Kun ottaa huomioon että vastapuolella saksalaisia vastaan hyökätessä oli vastassa suuremmilta osin vain kertalaukauksiin pystyviä pulttilukkokiväärejä, niin tällaisen konepistoolin antaman tulivoiman ylivertaisuuden käsittää paremmin. Neuvostoliiton nopean valmistuksen ansiosta kokonaisia joukkueita ja välillä koko komppanioita varustettiin tällä konepistoolilla, antaen joukoille huikean tulivoiman lyhyillä etäisyyksillä. Parempi tulivoima saksalaisten aseita vastaan olikin yksi Neuvostoliiton valtteja Saksaa vastaan.
ellauri279.html on line 37: Еб твою мать play:none">Nobelismia
ellauri279.html on line 38: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/90/Evstafiev-solzhenitsyn.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri279.html on line 103: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b4/Vladimir_Putin_with_Aleksandr_Solzhenitsyn-1.jpg/220px-Vladimir_Putin_with_Aleksandr_Solzhenitsyn-1.jpg" />
ellauri279.html on line 124: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/8b/PavlikMor.jpg" />
ellauri279.html on line 197: When Yuri joined the faculty of the Department of German and Russian at UCD in January, 1989, none of his colleagues had any idea of the remarkable fifty-five years of his life that had preceded his arrival in Davis. Some of us were aware of the fact that he had been censored for his writing in the Soviet Union, but most, if not all of us, were ignorant of the attack leveled against him in 1974 by the newspaper Izvestiya, which accused him of having slandered the Soviet peopl e, or of his having been removed from the Writers Union of the USSR in 1977 and declared “a traitor to the motherland” for his participation in the Samizdat underground publishing movement. In 1986, he was threatened by the KGB with either incarceration in a prison camp or confinement to a psychiatric ward, where he might well have languished had it not been for the intervention of Western writers such as Kurt Vonnegut and Arthur Miller , as well as, the International PEN-Club. Yuri was banished from his homeland a year later. He became a leading literary figure among Russian émigré writers while in exile, living first in Vienna, and then in Texas, before coming to California.
ellauri279.html on line 210: ploads/2019/11/jose-alperovich-.jpg?ssl=1" />
ellauri279.html on line 213: Jose, justicialist party honcho and governor of Tucuman was charged by the Public Prosecutor for the compl aint of sexual abuse by his niece.
ellauri279.html on line 256: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c5/Miguel_A._Faria_Jr._Wikipedia_image.jpg" />
ellauri279.html on line 259: Voisiko tääkin kirja-arvostelun väsääjä olla sefardi? A submission from Indiana, U.S. says the name Faria means "The one that will create. Jewish families converted to Catholicism avoiding the Inquisition in Portugal and Spain sec XIV-XV" and is of Portuguese origin. Bostonin reformijuutalaisen Templ e Israelin vetäjä on muuan Randy Faria.
ellauri279.html on line 302: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/ru/2/28/%D0%92_%D0%BA%D1%80%D1%83%D0%B3%D0%B5_%D0%BF%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%B2%D0%BE%D0%BC_%28%D0%BF%D0%BE%D1%81%D1%82%D0%B5%D1%80_%D1%82%D0%B5%D0%BB%D0%B5%D1%81%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%B8%D0%B0%D0%BB%D0%B0%29.jpg" />
ellauri279.html on line 308: Toinen tarina on tarina petturi Innokenty Volodinista. Ulkomailla matkustanut dipl omaatti, Neuvostoliiton älymystön eliitin edustaja, yrittää välittää Yhdysvaltain suurlähetystölle tietoja Neuvostoliiton tiedusteluagentin yrityksestä saada yhdysvaltalaisten tiedemiesten kehitystä eteenpäin atomipommin tuotannon alalla. Ryuminia esitti hassuttelija Igor Ugolnikov.
ellauri279.html on line 315: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/ru/9/90/Solzhenitsyn-obysk.jpg" />
ellauri279.html on line 404: 1970 - Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto "moraalisesta voimasta, jolla hän seurasi venäläisen kirjallisuuden muuttumattomia perinteitä" (tarjoaja François Mauriac ; muiden lähteiden mukaan - Yakov Malkiel). Hän sai dipl omin ja palkinnon rahallisen osan 10. joulukuuta 1974 Neuvostoliitosta karkotuksensa jälkeen.
ellauri279.html on line 410: 1983 Templ eton-palkinto huippuosaamisesta henkisen elämän tutkimuksessa tai löytöissä
ellauri279.html on line 456: Hän meni ensin naimisiin meksikolaisen näyttelijättären Rita Macedon kanssa. "Komeana helppoheikkinä" pidetyllä Fuentesilla oli myös korkean profiilin suhteita muiden näyttelijättärien kaa. Hänen ystäviään olivat eklottava Luis Buñuel, masis William Styron ja juustokiekon näköinen Friedrich Dürrenmatt. Fuentes synnytti kolme lasta, joista vain yksi selvisi hänestä. Poika, Carlos Fuentes Lemus, kuoli näennäiseen homofiliaan liittyviin kompl ikaatioihin vuonna 1999 25-vuotiaana. Tytär, Natasha Fuentes Lemus (syntynyt 31. elokuuta 1974), kuoli näennäiseen huumeiden yliannostukseen Mexico Cityssä 22. elokuuta 2005 30-vuotiaana.
ellauri281.html on line 37: Pensasneuvostoliittolaisia play:none">
ellauri281.html on line 38: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/8/8a/Puss_in_Boots_from_Shrek.png" width="100%" />
ellauri281.html on line 45: plomacy">Источник
ellauri281.html on line 49: Weikko Huovinen oli valmis hyväxymään suoraviivaisen vahvemman oikeuden rynkästä naapurien tupaan karmit kaulassa, mutta sitä se ei voinut sulattaa että käytetään kieronlaista tykkivenedipl omatiaa kuten Virossa. Big fat hairy difference, sanon mä.
ellauri281.html on line 65: Stalin oli hieman keskikorkeampi, rakennettu hyvin suhteellisesti, pidetty suorana, ei kumartunut. En ole koskaan nähnyt hänen punastuvan, hänen ihonsa on maanläheisen harmaa. Kasvot pienillä naarmuilla. Hänen hiuksensa on siististi kammattu taakse, mustat, vahvan harmaat. Silmät ovat harmaanruskeat. Joskus, kun hän halusi, ne olivat ystävälliset, jopa ilman hymyä, mutta hymyillen - kiehtovan hellästi. Joskus vihassa ne lävistävät. Ärsytyksessä kasvoille ilmestyi pieniä punaisia täpl iä.
ellauri281.html on line 73: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/0f/Convention_of_commanders_%28Retouched_photograph_in_the_Soviet_period%29._1921.jpg" />
ellauri281.html on line 145: VIDEO
ellauri281.html on line 160: Shoot these rabid dogs. Death to this gang who hide their ferocious teeth, their eagle claws, from the peopl e! Down with that vulture Trotsky, from whose mouth a bloody venom drips, putrefying the great ideals of Marxism! ... Down with these abject animals! Let's put an end once and for all to these miserable hybrids of foxes and pigs, these stinking corpses! Let's exterminate the mad dogs of capitalism, who want to tear to pieces the flower of our new Soviet nation! Let's push the bestial hatred they bear our leaders back down their own throats!
ellauri281.html on line 162: He often punctuated speeches with phrases like "Dogs of the Fascist bourgeoisie", "mad dogs of Trotskyism", "dregs of society", "decayed peopl e", "terrorist thugs and degenerates", and "accursed vermin". This dehumanization aided in what historian Arkady Vaksberg calls "a hitherto unknown type of trial where there was not the slightest need for evidence: what evidence did you need when you were dealing with 'stinking carrion' and 'mad dogs'."
ellauri281.html on line 164: British dipl omat Sir Frank Roberts, who served as British chargé d'affaires in Moscow from February 1945 to October 1947, described him as follows:
ellauri281.html on line 189: Chicherin and Litvinov were temperamental opposites and became rivals. Chicherin had a cultivated, polished personal style but held strongly anti-Western opinions. He sought to hold Soviet Russia aloof from dipl omatic deal-making with capitalist powers.
ellauri281.html on line 191: A distant relative of Aleksandr Pushkin, Georgy Chicherin was born into an old noble family. He was born on the estate of his uncle, Boris Chicherin, in Karaul, Tambov. His father, Vasily N. Chicherin, was a dipl omat empl oyed by the Foreign Office of the Russian Empire.
ellauri281.html on line 195: Chicherin followed a pro-German foreign policy in line with his anti-British attitudes, which he had developed during his time in the Foreign Ministry, when Britain was blocking Russian expansion in Asia. Chicherin is thought to have had more phone conversations with Lenin than anyone else. When Joseph Stalin repl aced Lenin in 1924, Chicherin remained foreign minister, and Stalin valued his opinions.
ellauri281.html on line 197: Chicherin pl ayed a major role in establishing formal relations with China and in designing the Kremlin´s policy on China. He focused on the Chinese Eastern Railway, Manchuria, and the Mongolian issue.
ellauri281.html on line 199: Chicherin was an eccentric, with obsessive work habits. Alexander Barmine, who worked in the Peopl e´s Commissariat for Foreign Affairs, noted that "Chicherin was a workaholic with peculiar habits. His workroom was compl etely buried in books, newspaper and documents. He used to patter into our room in his shirt sleeves, wearing a large silk handkerchief round his neck and slippers adorned with metal buckles ... which, for comfort´s sake, he never troubled to fasten, making a clicking noise on the floor." In 1930 Chicherin was formally repl aced by his deputy, Maxim Litvinov. A continuing terminal illness burdened his last years, which forced him away from his circle of friends and active work and led to an early death.
ellauri281.html on line 203: Maxim Maximovich Litvinov (Russian pronunciation: [mɐkˈsʲim mɐkˈsʲiməvʲɪtɕ lʲɪˈtvʲinəf]; born Meir Henoch Wallach; 17 July 1876–31 December 1951) was a Russian revolutionary, and prominent Soviet statesman and dipl omat who served as Peopl e´s Commissar for Foreign Affairs from 1930 to 1939. Hizi sekin oli jutku!
ellauri281.html on line 209: Litvinov moved to England in 1910 and lived there for eight years. In 1912, he repl aced Lenin as the Bolshevik representative on the International Socialist Bureau. In England, Litvinov met and in 1916 married Ivy Low, the daughter of a Jewish university professor.
ellauri281.html on line 211: In January 1918, Litvinov addressed the Labour Party Conference, praising the achievements of the Revolution. Alexander Kerensky, the leader of the democratic Russian Provisional Government that had repl aced the Tsar and was overthrown by Lenin, was welcomed by the British government on a visit to London and also addressed the Labour Party Conference, criticising the dictatorship of Lenin’s government. Litvinov repl ied to Kerensky in the left-wing English press, criticising him as being supported by foreign powers and intending to restore capitalism. Later in 1918, the British government arrested Litvinov, ostensibly for having addressed public gatherings held in opposition to British intervention in the ongoing Russian Civil War.
ellauri281.html on line 215: On 6 February 1933, Litvinov made the most-significant speech of his career, in which he tried to define aggression. He stated the internal situation of a country, alleged maladministration, possible danger to foreign residents, and civil unrest in a neighbouring country were not justifications for war. This speech became the authority when war was justified. British politician Anthony Eden had said; "to try to define aggression was a trap for the innocent and protection for the guilty". In 1946, the British Government supported Litvinov’s definition of aggression by accusing the Soviet Union of not compl ying with Litvinov’s definition of aggression. Finland made similar criticisms against the Soviet Union in 1939.
ellauri281.html on line 223: In 1933, Litvinov was instrumental in winning a long-sought formal dipl omatic recognition of the Soviet government by the United States. US President Franklin Roosevelt sent comedian Harpo Marx to the Soviet Union as a goodwill ambassador. Isosetä Karl oli näät disponibiliteetissa. Litvinov and Marx became friends and performed a routine on stage together. Litvinov also facilitated the acceptance of the Soviet Union into the League of Nations, where he represented his country from 1934 to 1938. Litvinov has been considered to have concentrated on taking strong measures against Italy, Japan and Germany, and being little interested in other matters.
ellauri281.html on line 225: After the 1938 Munich Agreement, German state media derided Maxim Litvinov for his Jewish ancestry, referring to him as "Finkelstein-Litvinov". The Munich Agreement (Czech: Mnichovská dohoda; Slovak: Mníchovská dohoda; German: Münchner Abkommen) was an agreement concluded at Munich on 30 September 1938, by Nazi Germany, the United Kingdom, France, and Italy. The agreement provided for the German annexation of land on the border between Czechoslovakia and Germany called the Sudetenland, where more than three million peopl e, mainly ethnic Germans, lived. The pact is also known in "some areas" as the Munich Betrayal (Czech: Mnichovská zrada; Slovak: Mníchovská zrada), because of a previous 1924 alliance agreement and a 1925 military pact between France and the Czechoslovak Republic.
ellauri281.html on line 226: An emergency meeting of the main European powers – not including Czechoslovakia, although their representatives were present in the town, or the Soviet Union, an ally to both France and Czechoslovakia – took pl ace in Munich, Germany, on 29–30 September 1938. An agreement was quickly reached on Hitler´s terms, and signed by the leaders of Germany, France, Britain, and Italy. The Czechoslovak mountainous borderland that the powers offered to appease Germany had not only marked the natural border between the Czech state and the Germanic states since the early Middle Ages, but it also presented a major natural obstacle to any possible German attack. Having been strengthened by significant border fortifications, the Sudetenland was of absolute strategic importance to Czechoslovakia.
ellauri281.html on line 228: On 30 September, Czechoslovakia yielded to the combination of military pressure by Germany, Poland, and Hungary, and dipl omatic pressure by the United Kingdom and France, and agreed to give up territory to Germany on Munich terms. Then, on 1 October, Czechoslovakia also accepted Polish territorial demands. Much of Europe celebrated the Munich Agreement, as they considered it a way to prevent a major war on the continent. Adolf Hitler announced that it was his last territorial claim in Northern Europe. Today, the Munich Agreement is widely regarded as a failed act of appeasement, and the term has become a byword for the futility of appeasing expansionist totalitarian states.
ellauri281.html on line 230: On 3 May 1939, Stalin repl aced Litvinov, who was closely identified with the anti-German position, with Vyacheslav Molotov. At a prearranged meeting, Stalin said: "The Soviet Government intended to improve its relations with Hitler and if possible sign a pact with Nazi Germany. As a Jew and an avowed opponent of such a policy, Litvinov stood in the way." Litvinov argued and banged on the table. Stalin then demanded Litvinov to sign a letter of resignation. On the night of Litvinov´s dismissal, NKVD troops surrounded the offices of the Commissariat of Foreign Affairs. The telephone at Litvinov´s dacha was disconnected and the following morning, Molotov, Georgy Malenkov, and Lavrenty Beria arrived at the commissariat to inform Litvinov of his dismissal. Many of Litvinov´s aides were arrested and beaten, possibly to extract compromising information.
ellauri281.html on line 234: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/MolotovRibbentropStalin.jpg/800px-MolotovRibbentropStalin.jpg" />
ellauri281.html on line 239: The imperialists in these two countries had done everything they could to goad Hitler’s Germany against the Soviet Union by secret deals and provocative moves. In the circumstances the Soviet Union could either accept German proposals for a non-aggression treaty and thus secure a period of peace in which to redouble preparations to repulse the aggressor; or turn down Germany’s proposals and let the warmongers in the Western camp push the Soviet Union into an armed conflict with Germany in unfavourable circumstances and in a setting of compl ete isolation. In this situation the Soviet Government was compelled to make the difficult choice and conclude a non-aggression treaty with Germany. I, too, would probably have concluded a pact with Germany although a bit differently.
ellauri281.html on line 241: The repl acement of Litvinov with Molotov significantly increased Stalin´s freedom to manoeuver in foreign policy. The dismissal of Litvinov, whose Jewish background was viewed disfavorably by Nazi Germany, removed an obstacle to negotiations with Germany. Stalin immediately directed Molotov to "purge the ministry of Jews". Recalling Stalin´s order, Molotov commented: "Thank God for these words! Jews formed an absolute majority in the leadership and among the ambassadors. It wasn´t good."
ellauri281.html on line 243: Given Litvinov´s prior attempts to create an anti-fascist coalition, association with the doctrine of collective security with France and Britain, and pro-Western orientation by Kremlin standards, his dismissal indicated the existence of a Soviet option of rapprochement with Germany. Molotov´s appointment was a signal to Germany the USSR would negotiate. The dismissal also signaled to France and Britain the existence of a potential negotiation option with Germany. One British official wrote Litvinov´s disappearance meant the loss of an admirable technician or shock-absorber, while Molotov´s modus operandi was "more truly Bolshevik than dipl omatic or cosmopolitan".
ellauri281.html on line 245: With regard to the signing of the Molotov–Ribbentrop Pact with secret protocols dividing Eastern Europe three months later, Hitler told military commanders; "Litvinov´s repl acement was decisive". A German official told the Soviet Ambassador Hitler was pl eased Litvinov´s repl acement Molotov was not Jewish.
ellauri281.html on line 247: In the 21-month period between the declaration of war by France and Britain, and the invasion of the Soviet Union by Germany, Ivy Litvinov describes this period of her life. She said the family spent their time with their daughter-in-law in their dacha 27 kilometres (17 mi) from Moscow and outside school holidays in the family apartment in Moscow, when they spent long weekends in the country. For two years, the family pl ayed bridge, read music, and went on long walks in the countryside with their two dogs.
ellauri281.html on line 249: 1941 Litvinov was definitively given the sack. LItvinov was livid. Stalin rejected everything Litvinov had said. When Stalin stopped speaking, Litvinov asked: "Does that mean you consider me an enemy of the peopl e?" Stalin answered: "We do not consider you an enemy of the peopl e, but too honest a revolutionary".
ellauri281.html on line 253: Early in November 1941, Litvinov was summoned to see Stalin and told his services were required as ambassador to the United States. In the US, the appointment was met with enthusiasm. The New York Times stated: "Stalin has decided to pl ace his ablest and most forceful dipl omat and one who enjoys greater prestige in this country. He is known as a man of exceptional ability, adroit as well as forceful. It is believed that Stalin, in designating him for the ambassadorship, felt Litvinov could exercise real influence in Washington."
ellauri281.html on line 257: The highlight of Litvinov’s eighteen months ambassadorship was the 25th celebration of the Russian Revolution on the 7 November 1942. 1,200 guests, representing all of the United Nations, entered the reception hall to shake hands with Litvinov. Russian vodka and a sturgeon from the Volga were suppl ied to the guests. Roosevelt became annoyed with Litvinov’s second-necklace zeal. He told Stalin to call in Litvinov.
ellauri281.html on line 263: In his reminiscences dictated to a supporter later in life, Vyacheslav Molotov—Litvinov´s repl acement as chief of foreign affairs and right-hand man of Joseph Stalin—said Litvinov was "intelligent" and "first rate" but said he and Stalin "didn´t trust him" and consequently "left him out of negotiations" with the United States during the war. Molotov called Litvinov "not a bad dipl omat—a good one" but also called him quite an opportunist who greatly sympathized with Leon Trotsky, Grigory Zinoviev, and Lev Kamenev. According to Molotov; Litvinov remained among the living in the Great Purge only by chance.
ellauri281.html on line 265: Vjatšeslav Mihailovitš Molotov (ven. Вячесла́в Миха́йлович Мо́лотов; 9. maaliskuuta (J: 25. helmikuuta) 1890 Kukarka, Venäjän keisarikunta – 8. marraskuuta 1986 Moskova, Venäjän SFNT, Neuvostoliitto) oli neuvostoliittolainen poliitikko ja dipl omaatti. Hänet tunnetaan erityisesti natsi-Saksan ulkoministerin Joachim von Ribbentropin kanssa vuonna 1939 allekirjoittamasta hyökkäämättömyyssopimuksesta, joka tunnetaan Molotov–Ribbentrop-sopimuksena. Molotov oli Aleksandra Kollontain ohella ainoita bolševikkien johtohahmoja, joka selvisi hengissä Stalinin vainoista. Niin ja (ehkä) Litvinov.
ellauri281.html on line 269: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/17/Molotov%2C_Stalin_and_Voroshilov%2C_1937.jpg" />
ellauri281.html on line 297: Alue on aivan hirveen näköinen, täynnä soita, lämpäreitä, hiilikaivoxia tai paremminkin avolouhoxia. Vanhat harppisakut ylpeilevät vielä sillä että kaivoivat sieltä aivan vitusti hiiltä ja pilasivat sillä koko pl aneetan. Jälellä on enää köyhiä maajusseja, mainoslehden jakajia, huumehörhöjä ja korruptoituneita skoudeja. Kellonvalaja Godunov oli vihannut kommunisteja koko ikänsä mutta nyt kun raha on ruotelissa... (SSH! Älä jatka!) Aivan hirveetä. Tollastako elämä on 21. vuosisadan heeboille? Ei käy kyllä kateexi. Niiden pitäis ryhdistäytyä ja aloittaa kommunismi uudestaan aivan alusta.
ellauri281.html on line 302: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/23/Polish_eagle_and_Soviet_soldier.JPG" />
ellauri281.html on line 313: VIDEO
ellauri281.html on line 314: VIDEO
ellauri281.html on line 315: VIDEO
ellauri281.html on line 321: Katyn muistetaan myös vuonna 2010 tapahtuneen lento-onnettomuuden yhteydestä, jossa oli Puolan presidentin Lech Kaczynskin johtama puolalainen valtuuskunta, joka lensi vierailemaan muistomerkkikompl eksissa Katynin verilöylyn 70-vuotispäivän yhteydessä - itse lento-onnettomuus. tapahtui Smolenskin lähellä. Neuvostoviranomaiset kiistävät osallisuutensa asiaan.
ellauri281.html on line 325: Limp Bizkit is an American rap rock band from Jacksonville, Florida. Its lineup consists of lead vocalist Fred Durst, drummer John Otto, guitarist Wes Borland, turntablist DJ Lethal and bassist Sam Rivers. The band's music is marked by Durst's angry vocal delivery and Borland's sonic experimentation. Borland's elaborate visual appearance, which includes face and body paint, masks, and uniforms, also pl ays a large role in Limp Bizkit´s live shows. The band has been nominated for three Grammy Awards, sold 40 million records worldwide, and won several other awards. The band has released 26 singles, the most notable of which include "Nookie", "Re-Arranged", "Break Stuff", "Take a Look Around", "Rollin' (Air Raid Vehicle)." Formed in 1994, Limp Bizkit became popular pl aying in the Jacksonville underground music scene in the late 1990s. n October 28, 2021, Durst confirmed via Instagram that the band's sixth album – now titled Still Sucks – would be released on October 31, 2021. Durst's lyrics are often profane, scatological or angry. Much of Durst´s lyrical inspiration came from growing up and his personal life. I did it all for the nookie [slang for sexual intercourse].
ellauri281.html on line 327: 12 km Katynista itään, Dneprin oikeaa rantaa pitkin, sijaitsee yksi Venäjän suurimmista arkeologisista kompl ekseista - Gnezdovo, joka sisältää kaksi asutusta ja yli kymmenen hautakumpua (useita tuhansia hautoja). Kaikki muistomerkit kuuluvat IX - XI vuosisadoille.
ellauri281.html on line 330: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a5/The_Katyn_Massacre%2C_1940_HU106207.jpg/800px-The_Katyn_Massacre%2C_1940_HU106207.jpg" />
ellauri281.html on line 347: 21. huhtikuuta. Vankila-autojen nousu ja valmistautuminen lähtöön. Meitä kuljetetaan jonnekin autoissa. Mitä seuraavaksi? Päivä alkaa oudosti aamunkoitteessa. Kuljetus laatikoissa "varis" (pelottava). Meidät tuotiin jonnekin metsään, se näyttää kesämökiltä. Perusteellinen haku. He olivat kiinnostuneita vihkisormuksestani, he ottivat pois rupl aa, vyön, kynäveitsen, kellon, joka näytti 6:30 ...
ellauri281.html on line 362: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c3/The_Katyn_Massacre%2C_1940_HU106221.jpg" />
ellauri281.html on line 400: 24. kesäkuuta 2022 ilmestyi tieto, että Puolan lippu poistettiin Katynin muistomerkkikompl eksista. Katynin hallinto vahvisti, että 24. kesäkuuta "Puolan lipun puuttuminen havaittiin", mutta ohjasi muut toimittajien kysymykset Venäjän nykyhistorian museoon, jolle muistomerkki kuuluu. Smolenskin pormestari Andrei Borisov sanoi, että päätöksen teki kulttuuriministeriö. Ukrainan lippuakaan ei ole näkynyt.
ellauri281.html on line 409: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a7/P%C3%A4ts_prison.jpg/375px-P%C3%A4ts_prison.jpg" />
ellauri281.html on line 441: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Thompson-and-his-gun.jpg/270px-Thompson-and-his-gun.jpg" />
ellauri281.html on line 511: Lupavapaa. Näköisrepl ika jolla ei voi ampua
ellauri281.html on line 523: Yksi suurimpia tämän konepistoolin valtteja oli sen suuri rumpulipas, johon sai ladattua mukaan 71 patruunaa. Hyökkäyksen keskellä ei tarvinnut pysähtyä lataamaan asetta, kun rumpulippaaseen mahtui yli tupl amäärä ammuksia jopa verrattuna tavanomaiseen konepistoolin tankolippaaseen. Kun ottaa huomioon että vastapuolella saksalaisia vastaan hyökätessä oli vastassa suuremmilta osin vain kertalaukauksiin pystyviä pulttilukkokiväärejä, niin tällaisen konepistoolin antaman tulivoiman ylivertaisuuden käsittää paremmin. Neuvostoliiton nopean valmistuksen ansiosta kokonaisia joukkueita ja välillä koko komppanioita varustettiin tällä konepistoolilla, antaen joukoille huikean tulivoiman lyhyillä etäisyyksillä. Parempi tulivoima saksalaisten aseita vastaan olikin yksi Neuvostoliiton valtteja Saksaa vastaan.
ellauri282.html on line 36: LÖYHÄPÄINEN KANSA play:none">Käärijöitä ja munamiehiä
ellauri282.html on line 51: Tää menee tosiaan prikulleen niinkuin ennakoin: lopun ajat tuo termiittiapinan pahimmat puolet pinnalle. Yhteen hiilijalanjälkeen puhaltaminen ei nappaa enää, sen sijasta trendaa julmuus izekkyys ja isänmaallisuus. Reviiriään partioivat Gog ja Magog käy toistensa turkkiin kuin terrierit sidostesukkaan, hälläväliä hengessä syömään izensä kuin kezut ja muunkin elävän siinä samalla. Urpo alkaa nälkäisenä purra omaa nilkkaa. Stressed peopl e fight like rats in a shoe. Olin oikeassa mutten kuitenkaan järin voitonriemuinen.
ellauri282.html on line 101: [3.4. klo 19.14] Oma Profiili: The famous Allan Ramsay portrait of David Hume, hanging in the University of Edinburgh, depicts him wearing a remarkable hat: a unique salmon-coloured turban. I was able to see the original on the occasion of receiving an honorary degree from Edinburgh in 2007, and ever since then I have desired to obtain a repl ica of that curious hat for myself (to wear on special occasions, such as those requiring academic regalia).
ellauri282.html on line 167: VIDEO
ellauri282.html on line 205: VIDEO
ellauri282.html on line 210: VIDEO
ellauri282.html on line 221: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/2c/Anders_NKVD.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri282.html on line 233: Kun "kansainvälinen tilanne muuttui" vuonna 1941 Barbarossa-operaatiossa eli Saksan hyökätessä Neuvostoliittoon vuonna 1941, Neuvostoliiton johtaja Josif Stalin alkoi hakea apua muilta Saksan vihollisilta. Britannian ulkoministerin Anthony Edenin vahvasti rohkaisemana Sikorski aloitti 5. heinäkuuta 1941 neuvottelut Neuvostoliiton Lontoon-suurlähettilään Ivan Mayskin kanssa dipl omaattisten suhteiden palauttamiseksi Puolan ja Neuvostoliiton välille. Sikorski oli molempien hallitusten saavuttaman sopimuksen arkkitehti, joka allekirjoitettiin 30. heinäkuuta 1941. Uusi sotilasliitto allekirjoitettiin Moskovassa 14. elokuuta 1941. Myöhemmin samana vuonna Sikorski meni Moskovaan dipl omaattisen edustuston kanssa (mukaan lukien tuleva Puolan Moskovan-suurlähettiläs Stanisław Kot ja Puolan sotilasoperaation päällikkö Neuvostoliitossa kenraali Zygmunt Szyszko-Bohusz). Sikorski –Mayski-sopimus oli Neuvostoliiton ja Puolan välinen sopimus, joka allekirjoitettiin Lontoossa 30. heinäkuuta 1941. Sen nimi on otettu sen kahdelta merkittävimmältä allekirjoittajalta: Puolan pääministeriltä, Władysław Sikorski ja Neuvostoliiton Yhdistyneen kuningaskunnan suurlähettiläs Ivan Mayski.
ellauri282.html on line 239: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ab/Wojtek_the_bear.jpg/400px-Wojtek_the_bear.jpg" />
ellauri282.html on line 294: ploads/2018/01/Matti-Pulkkinen-02.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri282.html on line 317: ple-it-is-easier-to-protect-anthony-de-mello-76-25-95.jpg" />
ellauri282.html on line 318: Tony on kuin Kari Wellman töhrittynä kenkäpl ankilla. Ja moniteholinssit.
ellauri282.html on line 352: Velazquesin kuoltua Loyola siirtyi Najeran herttuan Antonio Manrique de Laran (k. 1535) palvelukseen ja päätyi taistelemaan herttuan joukoissa Habaneros -kapinallisia vastaan. Pampl emoussen taistelussa vuonna 1521 Loyola haavoittui taistelussa molempiin jalkoihin tykin osumasta, ja hänen pikkujalkansa vammautui vakavasti. Lopulta leikkaukset jättivät hänen jalkansa sitä lyhyemmiksi. Hän ontui loppuelämänsä sotilasuransa päätyttyä.
ellauri282.html on line 356: Ollessaan toipilaana uskonnollisessa hospitaalissa, Loyola syventyi tavanomaisen ritariromanssien puutteessa uskonnolliseen kirjallisuuteen. Loyola luki muun muassa Ludolph Saksikäden (noin 1295 – 1378) kristillistä mietiskelyä käsittelevää teosta Vita Christi (suom. "Kristuksen elämä") ja Jacobus Voraginelaisen (noin 1230–1298) tylsimysten elämää käsittelevään teokseen Legenda jo eläessään. Ludolph ehdottaa, että lukija asettuisi henkisesti evankeliumitarinaan, visualisoimaan pinnasängyn sikiämishetkellä jne. Tämäntyyppinen meditaatio, joka tunnetaan nimellä Simpl e Contempl ation, oli menetelmän perusta. jonka Ignatius esitti henkisissä vällyharjoituksissaan.
ellauri282.html on line 438: Vuoteen 1947 mennessä Merton oli mukavampi roolissaan kirjailijana. Maaliskuun 19. päivänä hän antoi juhlallisen lupauksensa ja sitoutui elämään elämänsä luostarissa. Hän aloitti myös kirjeenvaihdon erään karthusialaisen kanssa St. Hugh's Charterhousessa Englannissa. Merton oli arvostanut kivempää karthusialaista ritarikuntaa Getsemaniin saapumisestaan vuonna 1941, ja hän harkitsi myöhemmin kystersiläisistä luopumista tuon ritarikunnan vuoksi. Siitä huolimatta Katolinen Commonweal- lehti julkaisi 4. heinäkuuta Mertonin esseen nimeltä Poetry and the Contempl ative Life.
ellauri282.html on line 440: Vuonna 1948 The Seven Storey Mountain julkaistiin kriitikoiden suosiossa, ja Mertonille lähetetty faniposti saavutti uusia korkeuksia. Merton julkaisi myös useita teoksia luostarille sinä vuonna, jotka olivat: Guide to Cistercian Life, Cistercian Contempl atives, Figures for an Apocalypse ja The Spirit of Simpl icity. Tuona vuonna Saint Mary's College (Indiana) julkaisi myös Mertonin kirjasen What Is Contempl ation? Merton julkaisi myös sinä vuonna elämäkerran, Exile Ends in Glory: The Life of a Trappistine, Mother M. Berchmans, OCSO.
ellauri282.html on line 444: 5. tammikuuta 1949 Merton matkusti junalla Louisvilleen ja haki Yhdysvaltain kansalaisuutta. Samana vuonna julkaistiin Seeds of Contempl ation, The Tears of Blind Lions, The Waters of Siloe ja The Seven Storey Mountainin brittiläinen painos otsikolla Elected Silence. 19. maaliskuuta Mertonista tuli ritarikunnan diakoni, ja 26. toukokuuta (helatorstaina) hänet vihittiin papiksi pitäen ensimmäisen messunsa seuraavana päivänä. Kesäkuussa luostari vietti satavuotisjuhlavuottaan, jonka kunniaksi Merton kirjoitti kirjan Gethsemani Magnificat muistoksi. Marraskuussa Merton aloitti opettaa mystistä teologiaa Getsemanin aloittelijoille, josta hän nautti suuresti. Tähän mennessä Merton oli valtava menestys luostarin ulkopuolella, ja The Seven Storey Mountainia on myyty yli 150 000 kappaletta. Seuraavina vuosina Merton kirjoitti monia muita kirjoja, jotka keräsivät laajan lukijakunnan. Hän tarkisti Seeds of Contempl ationin useita kertoja ja piti varhaista painostaan virhealttiina ja epäkypsänä. Ihmisen paikka yhteiskunnassa, näkemykset yhteiskunnallisesta aktivismista ja erilaiset lähestymistavat mietiskelevään rukoukseen ja elämään nousivat hänen kirjoituksissaan jatkuviin teemoihin.
ellauri282.html on line 449: 1960-luvulle mennessä hän oli päässyt laajalti inhimilliseen näkemykseen, joka oli syvästi huolissaan maailmasta ja sellaisista asioista kuin rauha, rodullinen suvaitsevaisuus ja sosiaalinen tasa-arvo. Hän oli kehittänyt persoonallisen radikalismin, jolla oli poliittisia vaikutuksia, mutta joka ei perustunut ideologiaan, ja jonka juuret olivat ennen kaikkea väkivallattomuudessa (ahimsa). Hän piti näkemyksensä perustuvana "yksinkertaisuuteen" ja ilmaisi sen kristillisenä tunteena. Hänen New Seeds of Contempl ation -teoksensa julkaistiin vuonna 1961. Kirjeessä Nicaraguan katoliselle papille, vapautumisteologille ja poliitikolle Ernesto Cardenalille (joka tuli Getsemaniin mutta lähti vuonna 1959 opiskelemaan teologiaa Meksikoon), Merton kirjoitti: "Maailma on täynnä suuria rikollisia, joilla on valtava voima, ja he kamppailevat kuolemantaistelussa keskenään. Se on valtava jengitaistelu, jossa käytetään hyvin tarkoittaen asianajajia, poliiseja ja pappeja eturintamassaan, jotka hallitsevat papereita, viestintävälineitä ja rekisteröivät kaikki armeijaansa."
ellauri282.html on line 457: Huhtikuussa 1966 Merton joutui leikkaukseen heikentävän selkäkivun hoitamiseksi. Toipuessaan Louisvillen sairaalassa hän rakastui vaikeasti Margie Smithiin, hänen hoitoonsa määrättyyn sairaanhoitajaopiskelijaan. (Hän kutsui häntä päiväkirjassaan nimellä "M.") Hän kirjoitti hänelle runoja ja pohdiskeli suhdetta "Juhannuspäiväkirjassa M." Merton kamppaili pitääkseen lupauksensa samalla kun hän oli syvästi rakastunut. Ei tiedetä, "viimeistelikö" hän koskaan suhdetta. Vizi varmaan "viimeisteli!" Mertonin päiväkirjan Kuudes osa, Learning to Love: Expl oring Solitude and Freedom aiheutti pienen kohun, kun päiväkirjamerkinnät paljastivat Mertonin "suhteen" nuoren sairaanhoitajan kaa vuonna 1966. Nainen, joka tunnistettiin vain "M":ksi, oli Mertonin syvän intohimon kohde: "En ole koskaan nähnyt niin paljon yksinkertaista, spontaania, täydellistä rakkautta", hän kirjoitti, vaikka ei kuvaillutkaan heidän suhdettaan seksuaalisilla termeillä. Tämän hyvin inhimillisen rakkauden ansiosta Merton sai uuden ymmärryksen mystisestä rakkaudesta. As Burton-Christie sanoo: "Hän tuli huomaamaan, että kokemus siitä, että hän on" rapt "ekstaattisessa rakkaudessa voi tapahtua, ei vain yksityisenä, hengellisenä kokemuksena, jonka Jumala ja hän itse jakavat, vaan myös fyysinen, läheinen suhde rakastajattaren kanssa." Mertonin rakkausrunot, joku ymmärtäväinen Burton-Christie toteaa, ovat täynnä tarvitsevuuden teemaa ja haavoittuminen, että alttius rakkaudelle on inhimillinen tila, jota edes munkit eivät saa kieltää. Tämä nuori sairaanhoitaja herätti Mertonissa tietoisuuden siitä, että hän oli katkaissut itsensä elämästä uskonnollisen varmuuden ja dogman muurien taaxe. Hänellä oli turvaa, mutta ei viisautta eikä elämää. Get a life! Ne muutamat kuukaudet, jolloin he näkivät toisensa, tekivät munkista haavoittuvan monille ihmisille tuttuun läjään tunteita, kiusauksia ja psyykkisiä haavoja, mutta juuri tässä kaaoksessa hän koki "Rakkauden maailman" parantavan ja uudistavan voiman. Mitä vetoa että "viimeisteli!" Olihan se poikasena ollut kova panomies.
ellauri282.html on line 509: Vuonna 1984 Keating perusti yhdessä Gustave Reiningerin ja Edward Bednarin kanssa Contempl ative Outreach, Ltd:n, kansainvälisen ja ekumeenisen hengellisen verkoston, joka opettaa Centering Prayer -rukouksen ja Lectio Divina -rukousmenetelmän, joka on peräisin kristillisestä kontempl atiivisesta perinteestä. Contempl ative Outreach tarjoaa tukijärjestelmän mietiskelypolulla oleville monenlaisten resurssien, työpajojen ja retriittien kautta.
ellauri282.html on line 519: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/9f/Thomas_Keating.jpg" />
ellauri282.html on line 522: A mountza or moutza also called faskeloma is the most traditional gesture of insult among Greeks. It consists of extending and spreading all fingers of the hand and presenting the palm towards the face of the person to be insulted with a forward motion. It is often coupl ed with να, ορίστε, or πάρτα (no, olkaa hyvä, ota nämä) and swear words. Jöns teki näin Ateenan torilla perheen Kreikan matkalla ostaaxeen viisi jotain, sai aika tylyn vastaanoton.
ellauri282.html on line 532: 1982, Nhất Hạnh ja Chân Không perustivat Luumukylän luostarin, siis viharan Dordogneen lähellä Bordeaux'ta Etelä -Ranskassa. Luumukylä on Euroopan ja Amerikan suurin buddhalainen luostari (tosin se on Euroopassa), jossa on yli 200 luostaria ja yli 10 000 kävijää vuodessa. Luostarit, jotka ovat avoinna yleisölle suuren osan vuodesta, tarjoavat jatkuvia retriittejä maallikoille, kun taas Interbeing-järjestys järjestää retriittejä tietyille etuoikeutetuille maallikoiden ryhmille, kuten perheille, teini-ikäisille, sotaveteraaneille, viihdeteollisuudelle, kongressin jäsenille, lainvalvontaviranomaisille ja värin ihmisille. Nhất Hạnh on julkaissut yli 130 kirjaa, joista yli 100 englanniksi, joita oli tammikuuhun 2019 mennessä myyty yli viisi miljoonaa kappaletta maailmanlaajuisesti. No ei ihan kuuhun menoa, Camilla Läckbergilläkin on huisisti enemmän. Toisaalta Costaricalainen dipl omaatti Christiana Figueres on sanonut, että Nhất Hạnh auttoi häntä voittamaan henkilökohtaisen kriisin ja kehittämään syvää kuuntelua ja empatiaa, jota kyllä tarvitaan Pariisin ilmastosopimuksen helpottamiseksi.
ellauri282.html on line 534: ploads/2022/01/E-morto-Thich-Nhat-Hanh-monaco-poeta-e-scrittore-padre-della-mindfulness.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri282.html on line 571: – Jag uppl ever inte att det var ett statsministerval. Det är främst medierna som talat om valet på det sättet, säger han. De Gröna borde ha talat mer om ekonomer.
ellauri282.html on line 576: ploads/2016/01/0135.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri282.html on line 613: Onko täpl ikäs lehmän lipsahdus ruohon mukana
ellauri283.html on line 37: Finneken i Piss play:none">Vitun hölmöjä
ellauri283.html on line 107:
ellauri283.html on line 114: Beyond the Heavens is a very ethereal and mystical experience, one unlike any other movie we have reviewed. However, this is not a good thing. The ‘pl ot’ is very unclear and murky, consisting of vague and meandering ideas and cryptic dialogue. It’s like Corbin Bernson is winking at the audience with every scene, waiting to reveal some great secret, but it’s never revealed. The whole has a very tip-of-the-tongue feel, like the characters know something you don’t but never intend to let you in on the secret. As the characters wax eloquent and philosophize about the true nature of reality, the viewer is left, in the end, with a more confusing view of reality than before. Is Bernson advocating for or against Darwinism? Is he a creationist? Does he really believe that angels come to earth on the tails of comets? Is Bernson suggesting that reality is not what it seems? If so, what is his view of reality? Only God knows the answers to these questions as Bernson spends 90 minutes toying with his ‘big reveal’ and dancing around whatever his philosophical worldview is. It’s basically just a waste of your time.
ellauri283.html on line 116: And what is to be made of Corbin Bernsen? What is his pl ace in Christian film? Is he trolling? Is he a great mind misunderstood? Whether it’s abstract musings like Beyond the Heavens or half-hearted satire like Christian Mingle or In-Lawfully Yours, Bernsen’s motivations for making Christian films are very unclear. It’s possible that he’s smarter than us all and doesn’t know how to show it. But it’s also possible that he’s just trying to make a quick buck off of Christian audiences. Reality is probably somewhere in between. Regardless, Beyond the Heavens really needed to be rethought before anyone spent money on it, because it falls flat and is unable to properly convey whatever message it is trying to present.
ellauri283.html on line 122: Video stalled a coupl e times the first time we watched it. Maybe scratched?? Or a sign from beyond? We found the movie to be a little odd.
ellauri283.html on line 200: Tästä puuttuu vielä pulttiboisten kestosuosikit romanit ja saamelaiset sekä kenkäpl ankilla tuhritut Halva-neekerit. Niitä politiikkaan pyrkinyt wokempi James Potkukelkka pyyteli jo anteexi, mutta nazi Aake Kalliala pysyi kovana. Naiset ja homopetterit sentään ovat vieläkin luvallista riistaa.
ellauri283.html on line 304: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a1/Dance_of_beja.jpg/440px-Dance_of_beja.jpg" />
ellauri283.html on line 369: 1970-luvun alkuun asti Sudanin maataloustuotanto oli pääosin omistettu sisäiseen kulutukseen. Vuonna 1972 Sudanin hallituksesta tuli länsimielisempi ja se suunnitteli elintarvikkeiden ja käteissadon vientiä. Hyödykkeiden hinnat kuitenkin laskivat koko 1970-luvun, mikä aiheutti taloudellisia ongelmia Sudanille. Samaan aikaan velanhoitokustannukset maatalouden koneistamiseen käytetyistä rahoista nousivat. Vuonna 1978 Kansainvälinen valuuttarahasto (IMF) neuvotteli rakennesopeutusohjelman hallituksen kanssa. Tämä edisti entisestään koneellista vientimaataloutta. Tämä aiheutti suuria taloudellisia ongelmia Sudanin laiduntajille (katso Nuba Peopl es). No niinpä tietysti! Juuri tätä uumoilinkin. Piikkilankoja preerialla. Justiinsa sama tematiikka kuin Suomen kovan markan nälänhädässä 1868 ja holodomorissa 1920-30 luvuilla: cash crops temmataan nälkäisten pienokaisten suista, koska se on kokonaisedullisempaa. Köyhät lampaannussijat ja kamelinajajat kärmistyvät.
ellauri283.html on line 375: Länsimaat aloittivat toimitukset Sudanille uudelleen 1970-luvun puolivälissä. Yhdysvallat aloitti Sudanin suuren määrän varusteiden myynnin vuoden 1976 tienoilla. Sotilasalan myynti oli huipussaan vuonna 1982, 101 miljoonaa dollaria. Allianssia Yhdysvaltojen kanssa vahvistettiin Ronald Reaganin johdolla. Yhdysvaltain "apu" kasvoi 5 miljoonasta dollarista vuonna 1979 200 miljoonaan dollariin vuonna 1983 ja sitten 254 miljoonaan dollariin vuonna 1985, pääasiassa sotilasohjelmiin. Sudanista tuli siten toiseksi suurin Yhdysvaltojen Afrikalle avun saaja (Egyptin jälkeen). "Päätettiin" rakentaa neljä lentotukikohtaa Rapid Depl oyment Force -yksiköille ja tehokas kuunteluasema CIA:lle Port Sudanin lähelle.
ellauri283.html on line 381: Kesäkuussa 1986 Sadiq al Mahdi muodosti koalitiohallituksen Umma-puolueen, demokraattisen unionistipuolueen (DUP) ja National Islamic Frontin kanssa (NIF) pl us neljä eteläistä puoluetta. Valitettavasti Sadiq osoittautui kuitenkin heikoksi johtajaksi ja kyvyttömäksi hallitsemaan Sudania. Puolueiden ryhmittely, korruptio, henkilökohtaiset kilpailut, skandaalit ja poliittinen epävakaus leimasivat Sadiqin hallintoa. Alle vuoden toimikautensa jälkeen Sadiq al Mahdi erotti hallituksen, koska se ei ollut onnistunut laatimaan uutta rikoslakia sharia-lain korvaamiseksi, pääsemään sopimukseen IMF:n kanssa, lopettamaan sisällissodan etelässä tai kehittämään suunnitelmaa houkutellakseen Sudanin ulkomaalaisten rahalähetykset. Säilyttääkseen DUP:n ja eteläisten poliittisten puolueiden tuen Sadiq muodosti toisen tehottoman koalitiohallituksen.
ellauri283.html on line 425: Lokakuussa 2020 Sudan teki sopimuksen dipl omaattisuhteiden normalisoimisesta Israelin kanssa, mikä oli osa Yhdysvaltojen kanssa tehtyä sopimusta Sudanin poistamisesta Yhdysvaltain terrorismin valtion tukijoiden luettelosta. [Minkä ihmeen terrorismin valtion? Israelinko?]
ellauri283.html on line 440: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/64/Cattle_Herders_at_Cattle_Camp_in_Rumbek%2C_South_Sudan.jpg?20130103061531" />
ellauri283.html on line 448: VIDEO
ellauri283.html on line 459: Nato-pomo Jens Stoltenberg etsi huumeriippuvaista siskoaan Oslon kaduilta – eliittiperheen särö muutti kansan mielipiteen Natoon. 1990-luvun alussa Thorvald Stoltenberg oli yksi Norjan tunnetuimmista poliitikoista ja dipl omaateista, koko kansan tuntema sosiaalidemokraatti.
ellauri283.html on line 508: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c1/Mansa_Musa.jpg" />
ellauri283.html on line 546: Hittills i år har fler än 500 människor, varav runt 50 barn, mist livet på Medelhavet, enligt FN:s migrationsorgan IOM. Dödstalet stiger parallellt med allt fler rapporter om försenade statliga räddningsinsatser och hjälporganisationer som hindras från att rädda liv. Italiens högerregering, med premiärminister Giorgia Meloni i spetsen, har utlyst nationellt nödläge och infört en rad lagar och dekret som många menar försvårar räddningsinsatserna. Bland annat är det sedan i februari olagligt att pl ocka upp nödställda från fler än en båt i taget.
ellauri284.html on line 37: Suursota 1914-18 play:none">Öyhöttäjiä
ellauri284.html on line 113: Von 2013 bis 2016 lebte Adrian Geiges in Rio de Janeiro, wo er als Korrespondent und Dokumentarfilmer u. a. für RTL und den WDR arbeitete. Ab September 2016 leitete er als Chefredakteur die Redaktion des Unternehmens-Magazins „Evonik“ für die Hamburger Medienagentur Bissinger pl us. Seit 2018 hält er Vorträge auf Kreuzfahrten von AIDA Cruises über die Städte und Länder, welche die Schiffe anfahren. Aika surkeaa.
ellauri284.html on line 120: Turhautuneet sakut ampuivat lopulta brittikaupunkia laivatykeillä. The Sarborough Espl anade suffered terribly.
ellauri284.html on line 125: Turhautuneet sakut kävi 1. maailmansodassa ampumassa brittikaupunkia mereltä laivatykeillä. The Sarborough Espl anade suffered terribly. 2. maailmansodan jo käytännössä ratkettua anglosaxit kävivät Dresdenissä maxamassa sakuille Scarboroughin vauriot potut pottuina ja ehkä vähän potti nokkiinkin?
ellauri284.html on line 131: The special virtues of the American peopl e and their institutions
ellauri284.html on line 135: An irresistible destiny to accompl ish this essential duty
ellauri284.html on line 161: Koko 1800-luvun lopun ja 1900-luvun alun Saksa liittyi muiden eurooppalaisten valtojen joukkoon kamppailussa siirtomaaomaisuudesta. Kuten muutkin maailmanvallat (so. britit, mukaan lukien Yhdysvallat ja Japani), Saksa alkoi puuttua Kiinan paikallisiin asioihin. Kun kaksi saksalaista lähetyssaarnaajaa sai surmansa Juyen välikohtauksessa vuonna 1897, Kiinan oli pakko suostua Kiautschou Bayn oluttehtaan toimilupaan Shantungissa (nykyinen Shandong ) Saksalle vuonna 1898 99 vuoden vuokrasopimuksella. Saksa alkoi sitten vahvistaa vaikutusvaltaansa muualla provinssissa ja rakensi Tsingtaon kaupungin ja sataman, josta tuli Kaiserlichen merijalkaväen saksalaisen Itä-Aasian laivueen tukikohta.(Saksan laivasto), joka toimi Saksan siirtokuntien tukena Tyynellämerellä. Iso-Britannia suhtautui saxalaiseen olueen Kiinassa epäluuloisesti ja vuokrasi Weihaiwein, myös Shantungissa, merisatamaksi ja hiilivoimalaitokseksi. Venäjä vuokrasi oman asemansa Port Arthurissa (nykyinen Lüshunkou ) ja Ranska Kwang-Chou-Wanissa. Iso-Britannia alkoi myös luoda läheisiä suhteita Japaniin, ja dipl omaattisuhteet tiivistyivät, kun anglo-japanilainen liitto allekirjoitettiin 30. tammikuuta 1902. Japani näki liiton välttämättömänä pelotteena pääkilpailijalleen Venäjälle. Japani osoitti potentiaalinsa voitolla Venäjän ja Japanin sodassa 1904–1905, ja liitto jatkui ensimmäiseen maailmansotaan.
ellauri284.html on line 216: VIDEO
ellauri284.html on line 243: Sarja muistelee useita todellisia historiallisia sodan tapahtumia, kuten joulutauon vuonna 1914. Blackadder muistelee tapahtumaa: "Molemmat osapuolet etenivät yhden joulupisun aikana pidemmälle kuin kahden ja puolen seuraavan sodan vuoden aikana." Viitataan myös aikakauden populaarikulttuuriin sekä aiempaan sarjaan. Jaksossa "Private Plane" nähdään Lord Flashheartin ja Bobin hahmojen paluu toisesta sarjan "Bells" -jaksosta sekä myös saksalaisen lentävä ässä, Baron von Richthofen. Kolmannen jakson "Major Star" juonen lanka sisältää Blackadderin vastenmielisyyden mykkäelokuvatähteen Charlie Chapl iniin, jota hän pitää "yhtä hauskana kuin saada nuoli kaulan läpi ja sitten huomata, että siihen on sidottu bensalasku". Totta Mooses Rowan, Charlie on täysin huumoriton kaatuilija. Toinen viittaus viitattiin Sudaniin, jonka sodan veteraani Blackadder oli. Toisin kuin brittien messinki, Blackadder näkee brittien liiallisen itseluottamuksen läpi: aikaisemmat voitot jotka tukahduttivat siirtomaakapinat olivat valmistautumista suureen siirtomaasotaan.
ellauri284.html on line 301: Raimo Majuri huumeoikeudenkäynnissä. Äänessä asianajaja Herbert Gumpl er.
ellauri284.html on line 404: Eastwood osallistui Piemonten keskikouluun5, jossa häntä pidäteltiin huonojen akateemisten tulosten vuoksi, ja tiedot osoittivat, että hänen oli myös osallistuttava kesäkouluun. Tammikuusta 1945 ainakin tammikuuhun 1946 hän osallistui Piemonten lukioon, mutta häntä pyydettiin poistumaan, koska hän kirjoitti koulun virkamiehelle säädyttömän ehdotuksen urheilukentän tulostaululle ja poltti kuvan koulun nurmikolla pl us muut koulurikkomukset.
ellauri284.html on line 505: ploads/cmg_images/566237/rid_6ff4af2dae008cb08db90df93871ca0a/Hilarious-T-Shirts-imgur.com-n0eUs81-1024x1365.jpeg.pro-cmg.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri284.html on line 542: TIETOJA M3M:STÄ pl us kuvake
ellauri284.html on line 553: ple.cs.nctu.edu.tw/~whtsai/India_2007/Webpages/05%20Major%20Sites%20Pictures/04%20Hawa%20Mahal%20(Wind%20Palace)/Webpages/originalimages/06%20A%20group%20of%20India%20peopl e%20nearby.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri284.html on line 589: M3M Intian perustivat vuoden 2005 alussa Basant ja Roope Bansal, jotka halusivat aloittaa kiinteistöliiketoiminnan. Yrityksen intohimo ja omistautuminen tulivat sen perustaksi, ja pian tie huippuosaamiseen alkoi. Pankaj Bansal on yhdysvaltalainen johtava yrittäjä, joka perusti M3M Indian, yhden Intian tunnetuimmista ja nopeimmin kasvavista kiinteistökehittäjistä. Hän on valmistunut Narsee Monjee Institute of Management Studiesista Mumbaissa ja Harvard Business Schoolin Executive Management Programista Yhdysvalloissa. Tunnetut Trump Towers Delhissä NCR ja Golf Estate Gurgaonissa ovat vain pari esimerkkiä Gurugramin ylpeydestä. Pankaj Bansal, nuori yrittäjä, joka on vielä 40-vuotias, on täsmälleen 34-vuotias. M3M Golfin kiinteistökehitys, joka sisältää yli 50 hehtaarin huippuylellisen lomakeskuksen kaltaisen asuinkompl eksin, on huippusaavutus. M3M Golf Estate on voittanut joukon arvostettuja palkintoja yhdeksi Intian parhaista luksusprojekteista ja ulkomailla.
ellauri284.html on line 599: A man stands in front of a small, ramshackle store near the apartment blocks of Gurgaon, India, where a firm is building a Trump-branded tower. The agreement gives the Trump Organization a portion of its office rentals. (Enrico Fabian/for The Washington Post). GURGAON, India — The Trump Organization is about to double its real estate empire in India with two new projects in this suburb of New Delhi known for rapacious development and poor pl anning.
ellauri284.html on line 600: In two deals signed before Donald Trump was elected president, the company aligned itself with Indian partners who were already attracting the attention of law enforcement authorities. One, called IREO, is under investigation by India’s Enforcement Directorate over the source of its funding, suspected violations in its land purchasing and the possibility of money laundering. The other, M3M India, has been the target of sweeping tax raids; on a different project, the company was recently accused in a criminal compl aint of bribing officials to clear-cut land.
ellauri284.html on line 605: “Everything is compromised,” said Sanjay Sharma, a Gurgaon real estate broker. “It’s not some peopl e in some pl aces who are corrupt. Corruption is institutionalized. To thrive in this real estate market, you must be a scoundrel. It is impossible for a thorough gentleman to survive here.”
ellauri284.html on line 609: After Saxena appl ied for a land-use change back in 2005, Dinesh Dayma, an agent acting on behalf of IREO, persuaded him to sell his land before the government acquired it by eminent domain, according to Saxena. Panicked, Saxena sold about a third of it for $188,000. The developers packaged it with other parcels, similarly acquired, and now are making it available for the Trump project.
ellauri284.html on line 626: In April 2016, the Trump Organization announced that it was expanding its brand in India, lending its name to an IREO Private Ltd. office tower in Gurgaon designed by Foster + Partners, the architects of Appl e’s new campus. The Trump company signed a licensing agreement with IREO that includes use of the name, technical assistance and a portion of office rental income, according to Lalit Goyal, IREO’s managing director.
ellauri284.html on line 635: Goyal said at the time they founded IREO that the company faced unusual scrutiny because few peopl e in India understood the concept of private equity.
ellauri284.html on line 638: The Bansal brothers, Basant and Roop — sons of a mustard-seed-oil seller from a small village nearby — made their fortune buying up adjoining pl ots of land for bigger developers. As they built M3M India, which stands for “Magnificence in the Trinity of Men, Materials and Money,” they became adept at sweet-talking villagers over a hookah pipe, locals said. The Bansals, who declined to comment for this article, helped IREO put together the land for the Trump project.
ellauri284.html on line 641: A man preps his tanker for filling at a sewage-treatment pl ant. Less than half of Gurgaon residents have sewer access. (Enrico Fabian/for The Washington Post)
ellauri284.html on line 649: One state official, who spoke on the condition of anonymity for fear of jeopardizing his empl oyment, recalled the heady days of growth when developers routinely showed up at the home of a former chief minister in sport-utility vehicles laden with suitcases full of cash.
ellauri284.html on line 652: Commonpl ace corruption
ellauri284.html on line 655: The Bansal brothers have come far since their gritty early days. They have several large projects in the works, including one compl ex built around a nine-hole golf course that has suffered delays. Now, they are preparing to announce a joint venture with Mehta’s Mumbai-based Tribeca Developers to build Trump-branded residences, Mehta said.
ellauri284.html on line 660: In March, one of the Bansals’ empl oyees was caught allegedly bribing a forest guard to illicitly cut more than 2,200 trees, in connection with a separate project, according to a police compl aint that is still under investigation.
ellauri284.html on line 664: The Indian flag waves over a settlement for construction workers at the site of the pl anned Trump/IREO tower. (Enrico Fabian/for The Washington Post)
ellauri284.html on line 684: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/41/Earl_Roberts_of_Kandahar.jpg" />
ellauri284.html on line 700: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/77/Abraham_Roberts_-_Project_Gutenberg_eText_16528.jpg" />
ellauri284.html on line 715: Intian kapina, Delhin piiritys, Lucknowin piiritys, Umbeylan kampanja, 1868 retkikunta Abessiniaan, Magdalan taistelu, Lushaiin retki, Toinen englantilais-afganistanilainen sota, Peiwar Kotalin taistelu, Charasiabin taistelu, Sherpur-kantonmentin piiritys, Kandaharin taistelu, Toinen buurien sota, Kimberleyn piiritys, Paardebergin taistelu, Popl ar Groven taistelu, Diamond Hillin taistelu, Bergendalin taistelu
ellauri284.html on line 723: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a0/Lieutenant_Roberts_finding_General_Nicholson.jpg/340px-Lieutenant_Roberts_finding_General_Nicholson.jpg" />
ellauri284.html on line 741: Pilgrims Society, jonka Sir Harry Brittain KBE CMG perusti 16. heinäkuuta 1902, on brittiläis-amerikkalainen yhdistys, joka perustettiin amerikkalaisen dipl omaatin Joseph Choaten sanoin "edistämään hyvää tahtoa, hyvää toveruutta ja ikuista rauhaa Yhdysvaltojen ja Ison-Britannian välillä". Sitä ei pidä sekoittaa Massachusettsin Plymouthin Pilgrim Societyyn jonka tarkoitus oli päinvastainen.
ellauri284.html on line 743: Vuosien varrella se on ylpeillyt poliitikkojen, dipl omaattien, liikemiesten ja kirjailijoiden eliittijäsenyydestä, johon ovat kuuluneet Henry Kissinger, Margaret Thatcher, Caspar Weinberger, Douglas Fairbanks Jr., Henry Lude, Lord Carrington, Alexander Haig, Paul Volcker, Buster Keaton, George Shultz ja Walter Cronkite monien monien muiden joukossa. Lähimmän kuninkaallisen perheen jäsenet, Yhdysvaltain ulkoministerit ja Yhdysvaltain suurlähettiläät St. Jamesin tuomioistuimeen saakka hyväksytään tavallisesti viran puolesta yhdistyksen jäsenyyteen.
ellauri284.html on line 753: ploads/2019/04/Diana-Lark-Nude-23.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri284.html on line 781: Waterford on Irlannin koilliskulmassa. Waterford tunnetaan Waterford Crystalista, joka on kaupungin entisen lasiteollisuuden perintö. Lasia tai kristallia valmistettiin kaupungissa vuodesta 1783 vuoden 2009 alkuun, jolloin siellä oleva tehdas suljettiin Waterford Wedgwood pl c:n konkurssin jälkeen. Waterford tunnetaan myös Ryanairin ensimmäisen lennon, 14-paikkaisen Embraer Bandeirante potkuriturbiinikoneen, lähtöpaikkana Waterfordin ja Lontoon Gatwickin lentokentän välillä. Waterford Port oli yksi Irlannin suurimmista satamista yli vuosituhannen. 1800-luvulla laivanrakennus oli merkittävä teollisuus. Neptunuksen telakan onnelliset omistajat, Malcomsonin perhe rakensi ja käytti maailman suurinta rautahöyrylaivastoa 1850-luvun puolivälin ja 1860-luvun lopun välillä, mukaan lukien viisi transatlanttista matkustajalaivaa.
ellauri285.html on line 38: Paasauxia kasarista play:none">Paasauxia
ellauri285.html on line 55: Ensimmäinen käynti Sysmiössä vuoden 2023 keväällä. Seijan vanha valkoinen Pannonia-polkupyörä ja Patti Mulkkisen Suomi Sata paasausromaani lähtee mukana. Nyt mulla on tää pl us Patti Mulkkisen jouzenlaulu, joista on hyvä paasata samalla kerralla. Paska jätkä ilman muuta, mutta sen paasauxissa on paljon tutunomaista. Patin 2 viimeistä tiiliskiveä ei pitäisi ollenkaan yrittää arvostella romaaneina, sillä ne ovat puhtaita paasauxia. Tämä albumi on jatkoa albumissa 282 alkaneeseen Patti Mulkkisen riivintään. Aihe jatkuu 10 albumia myöhemmin albumissa 295 .
ellauri285.html on line 66: Why do humans need to wipe after they poop, when animals can just squat and pl op? Why do humans need to shower or they'll get rashes and smell awful, but animals don't?
ellauri285.html on line 70: Consider, for exampl e, the horse. We live across from a horse breeding establishment so I’ve had ampl e opportunity to observe these estimable animals in action. While they shit copiously they never get any on their hair (when was the last time you saw a horse’s behind fouled by its own waste?). The reason for this lies in the design of the horse anus. It is an extensible device that, when a BM is about to pass, protrudes a few critical inches, allowing the manure to drop straight to the ground without mussing a single hair. To further forfend fouling, there is no hair in the immediate vicinity of the horse’s anus, nor on the extensible process itself. What a remarkable design.
ellauri285.html on line 143: The Michigan Relics (also known as the Scotford Frauds or Soper Frauds) are a series of alleged ancient artifacts that were "discovered" during the late nineteenth and early twentieth century. They were presented by some to be evidence that peopl e of an ancient Near Eastern culture had lived in North America and the U.S. state of Michigan, which, is known as pre-Columbian contact. Many scholars have determined that the artifacts are archaeological forgeries. The Michigan Relics are considered to be one of the most elaborate and extensive pseudoarchaeological hoaxes ever perpetrated in American history.
ellauri285.html on line 147: Though it is often mistaken to impl y that no way of seeing the world can be taken as definitively true, perspectivism can instead be interpreted as holding certain interpretations (such as that of perspectivism itself) to be definitively true :D .
ellauri285.html on line 157: Heil Shipl er
ellauri285.html on line 159: David Shipl er, who is neither an Arab nor a Jew, served as the Jerusalem bureau chief for The New York Times from 1979 to 1984. Shipl er sanoo että israelilaisissa nuortenkirjoissa arabi on saanut entisen saxalaisen, kasakan tai ukrainalaisen paikan viholliskuvana. Heprealaisen yliopiston naistenvessan seinässä lukee: Arabit on koiria/kissoja/hiiriä/hevosia/aaseja. Arabit hoilaavat miekkarissa: Me ollaan arabeja ja juutalaiset on meidän koiria.
ellauri285.html on line 165: Kirjan retorinen strategia perustuu tiettyjen juutalaisten, yleensä Israelin vasemmistolaisten, taitavaan käyttöön tuomitsemaan maanmiehensä ja maansa uskonnollisen perinnön niin äärimmäisellä tavalla, että Shipl erin oma kritiikki vaikuttaa maltilliselta ja hillityltä verrattuna mamiin.
ellauri285.html on line 171: Ainakin yksi israelilainen näyttää yrittäneen ehdottaa tätä Shipl erille, mutta turhaan. Kirjailija David Shahar kertoi hänelle, että juutalaiset tekevät kaiken PLO:n propagandan sen hyväksi, koska PLO:n ihmiset eivät ole tarpeeksi älykkäitä tekemään sitä itselleen. Mutta Shipl er piti huomautusta toisena esimerkkinä juutalaisesta rasismista.
ellauri285.html on line 228: I cannot get into these issues here, but there is mounting empirical evidence of compl ex unconscious mental phenomena guiding compl ex social behaviour and goal pursuit (for a good overview, see Hassin, et al 2004). Matelijan aivot rulettaa! Jasun transitiivisuusaxiooma failaa, Mirjam huomauttaa, mutta ei se mitään, failaa se muutenkin.
ellauri285.html on line 244: Edes koko pl ärän luettua ei tiedä mitä toi best feasible disposition oikein on. Enmä nää tässä mitään uutta klassilliseen utiliteettiteoriaan verraten. Näyttää vähän siltä että Mirja puhuu syytettyjen luonnetodistuxista niinkuin britti barristerisarjoissa, mikä on tietysti sikäli perusteltua että dumari miettii myös sitä mitä vaaraa tästä häiskästä on jos se päästetään vapaalle jalalle. Tyyppi joka tukkii zägällä oikeen käytävän saa potkut koska sen strategia ei ollut minimax, se on vaarallinen riskinottaja. Se tappaa enemmän mainareita kuin pelastaa pitkässä juoxussa. But in the epistemic domain as in others, foolishness is sometimes rewarded, say by a chair in theoretical philosophy in a peripheral university. Pity there are no mountains in that peripheral country.
ellauri285.html on line 255: Jotkut filosofit ovat sanoneet, että dispositiot eivät kelpaa syixi. Miksi? Heidän ajatuksensa voidaan kiteyttää Molièren kuuluisaan sutkautukseen Le Malade Imaginairessa, että filosofi voisi selittää, miksi oopiumi nukuttaa ihmisiä mainitsemalla, että sillä on "uinuttava voima", virtus dormitiva. A fortiori sanotaan että laahus on epäpätevää koska sillä on "laahustava voima". Ne on yxinkertaiseseti huonompia. Jos sulla on huonommuusompl exi, se johtuu siitä että olet huonompi. Dispositionalism can be viewed as a form of primitivism.
ellauri285.html on line 257: ple.org/profiles/photo/58550/small" />
ellauri285.html on line 265: Kuappinen avaa paperinsa huonosti väittämällä että Anna Kareninan todellinen sankari on Konstantin Levin. Mitä vittua? No koska "Levin is a respected, wealthy and hardworking landowner, and a proud father married to a beautiful and insightful woman who loves him deepl y." Kun muut ovat yhdentekeviä, näyttää olevan oman etumme mukaista elää ize enemmän tai vähemmän merkityksellistä elämää.
ellauri285.html on line 333: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/3/3b/Philosopher_Peter_Geach_in_1990.jpg" />
ellauri285.html on line 347: Mary Robinson (née Darby; 27 November 1757 – 26 December 1800) was an English actress, poet, dramatist, novelist, and celebrity figure. She lived in England, in the cities of Bristol and London; she also lived in France and Germany for a time. She enjoyed poetry from the age of seven and started working, first as a teacher and then as actress, from the age of fourteen. She wrote many pl ays, poems and novels. She was a celebrity, gossiped about in newspapers, famous for her acting and writing. During her lifetime she was known as "the English Sappho". She earned her nickname "Perdita" for her role as Perdita (heroine of Shakespeare's The Winter's Tale) in 1779. She was the first public mistress of King George IV while he was still Prince of Wales.
ellauri285.html on line 366: Muffs that a RUSSIAN might appl aud, Muhvit kelpaisivat RYSSILLE,
ellauri285.html on line 376: A necklace that might be displ ay'd Kaulanauhat sevverran upeat,
ellauri285.html on line 423: Millas klass, 5:orna i Västbergaskolan, ordnar valborgsfirande i Telefonpl an/Hökmossen. Varmt välkomna! Det finns brasa, fiskdamm, fika, korv, hamburgare, popcorn, sockervadd, chokladhjul och lotteri på pl ats! Och som pricken på I:et kommer barnen att sjunga för oss. Hoppas att vi ses där! 🥳🔥
ellauri285.html on line 432: Jaan Kapl inski väitti että talitintti ikkunalla ennustaa kuolemaa. Ken nokkivi ikkunaa? Lupsa! Patulla oli ennen aivohalvausta koko oikea kylki kipeä ja niska jumissa.
ellauri285.html on line 437: Suoraselkäisiä keskustaoikeistolaisia, jotka istuivat 85 syytettyjen penkillä Patin julkaistua oman epäihmisen äänensä. Paizi E. Saarinen, joka ei jäänyt kiinni. Kuusi sanoo kiittävästi Eskistä: pl ayboy ei lukisi Eino Kailan persoonallisuutta, mutta Eino Kailan tutkija voi leikkiä pl ayboyta. Kuusi tykkäsi kun Eski haukkui Kailan loogista empiriokritisismiä. Eski ajoi ensimmäissen Finlandia-palkinnon lautakunnassa 1984 Eerno Paasilinnan esseekokoelman Yxinäisyys ja uhma Pimenoffin kauniin Helenan ohize. Miespaneeli vei voiton taas, Kuusi käänsi kelkkansa keskustaoikeistoveljien ja nazikaverin, lestadiolaisen Niels Nielsenin viitoittamalle ladulle. Eski ei ollutkaan meediajulkisuuden vuoxi älyllisesti epärehellinen etuvasemmalle, vaan juurikin päinvastoin, takaoikealle. Kuusi ei pitänyt AKS-läisenä ylioppilaana Eino Kailasta, koska se oli lipilaari ja sai silti kaikki kauniit filosofityttöset. Mutta kukahan maailman 100K korhosesta oli juuri Pulkin mainizema Korhonen? Patin äitikin oli os. Korhonen.
ellauri285.html on line 449: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/b4/Erno-Paasilinna-1963.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri285.html on line 667: La même année, il part à Cuba puis suit Che Guevara en Bolivie. Il théorise sa participation à la guérilla de l'ELN dans Révolution dans la révolution (1967) où il développe la théorie du foquisme de « foco » (foyer en espagnol) : la multipl ication de foyers de guérilla. Ion Pacepa, ancien général des services secrets roumains, dit qu'alors le « terroriste français Régis Debray était un agent hautement prisé du KGB ». Il use alors du pseudonyme de « Danton »
ellauri285.html on line 669: Engagé aux côtés de Che Guevara dans les années 1960, il est emprisonné et torturé à pl usieurs reprises en Amérique du Sud. Selon Jorge Castañeda Gutman, Debray est passé à tabac les premiers jours de sa détention, mais jamais torturé au sens propre.
ellauri285.html on line 676: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/52/Regis_Debray-_1968.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri285.html on line 680: En 1979, son tiersmondisme revenant à la charge, il participe - essentiellement en tant qu´observateur - à la révolution sandiniste aux côtés des muchachos du Nicaragua aux côtés de Daniel Ortega et Humberto Ortega, qui considèrent le proche de Castro comme un ami. Un crochet par Paris lui fait manquer le renversement du dictateur Somoza en pl ace.
ellauri285.html on line 689: Il appelle cette nécessité de définir le groupe par une entité qui lui est extérieure l´incompl étude, et nomme cette entité le « sacré du collectif », qui est la représentation de ce que le groupe estime être le « meilleur ». C´est cette croyance qui assure la confiance réciproque entre les membres du groupe, et garantit selon R. Debray l´ordre social.
ellauri285.html on line 696: Mitterrand palkizi pyllynnuolijansa liipalaapan dipl omaattiposteilla, joissa sooloiltuaan Reggie joutui disponibiliteettiin kuin Heikki Brotherus. Mitterrand syntyi vuonna 1916 Jarnacin kunnassa Charenten departementissa läntisessä Ranskassa. Hän kasvoi konservatiivisessa ja katolisessa porvariperheessä, ja uskonnollista yksityiskoulua käyneen Mitterrandin ajatusmaailma oli 1930-luvulla oikeistolainen sekä nationalistinen. Hänen poliittinen uransa alkoikin liittymisellä äärinationalistiseen Croix de Feu -ryhmään. Hän myös kirjoitti L´Écho de Paris -sanomalehteen, joka vastusti istuvaa Léon Blumin vasemmistohallitusta. Sodan aikana hän työskenteli Vichyn hallituksen alaisuudessa. Myöhemmin hän toimi Ranskan vastarintaliikkeessä pitäen samaan aikaan virkaa saksalaismyönteisessä hallituksessa. Toisen maailmansodan jälkeen Mitterrand käänsi kelkkaa vähän liittyen keskustavasemmistolaiseen UDSR-puolueeseen Hän ohjasi puoluettaan vehen viele vasemmalle pitäen kuitenkin selvän pesäeron kommunisteihin.
ellauri285.html on line 708: Les États-Unis auraient ainsi su échapper à cette crise du sacré, par leur civisme et leur patriotisme, même s´ils se sont mis au service de mauvaises causes. L’effigie du dollar des États-Unis en est un exempl e : « In God We Trust, All Others Pay Cash ». C’est cette symbolique patriotique qui ferait la force des États-Unis. Debray prétend appl iquer le théorème d´incompl étude de Gödel à l´ordre social pour « démontrer » sa théorie. Régis Debray a été vivement critiqué pour son utilisation du théorème d´incompl étude de Gödel, jugée au mieux infondée sinon fallacieuse par Alan Sokal et Jean Bricmont dans leur livre Impostures intellectuelles, et par Jacques Bouveresse dans Prodiges et vertiges de l´analogie.
ellauri285.html on line 710: Régis Debray affirme que quand s’épuise le sens du symbolique reviennent les autorités religieuses. Plus la puissance symbolique est dématérialisée (la religion), pl us l’ordre symbolique est fort et pl us la puissance symbolique est historicisée (personnages), pl us l’ordre symbolique est fragile. Une humanité sans croyance est donc, selon lui, réduite à l’animalité.
ellauri285.html on line 714: La troisième grande technologie est la révolution informatique avec le développement du Web. Sur cette toile géante, il n’y a pl us de frontières, pl us d’État. À quelle forme de « sacré » cela mène-t-il ? Moi je ne suis qu´un petit continuateur, conclut modestement Régis Debray.
ellauri285.html on line 715: « Les trois césures médiologiques de l´humanité – écriture, imprimerie, audiovisuel – découpent dans le temps des images trois continents distincts : l´idole, l´art, le visuel. Chacun a ses lois. Leur confusion est source de tristesses inutiles. » Non, je n´ai pas inventé ça non pl us. Moi je ne suis qu´un petit continuateur, conclut modestement Régis Debray.
ellauri285.html on line 753: The critical positivity ratio (also known as the "Losada ratio" or the "Losada line" [not verified in body]) is a largely discredited concept in positive psychology positing an exact ratio of positive to negative emotions which distinguishes "flourishing" peopl e from "languishing" peopl e.[citation needed] The ratio was proposed by psychologists Barbara Fredrickson and Marcial Losada, who believed that they had identified an experimental measure of affect whose model-derived positive-to-negative ratio of 2.9013 defined a critical separation between flourishing and languishing individuals, as reported in their 2005 paper in American Psychologist.[non-primary source needed] This concept of a critical positivity ratio was widely embraced by academic psychologists and the lay public; Fredrickson and Losada´s paper had been cited more than 320 times by January 2014, and Fredrickson wrote a popular book expounding the concept of "the 3-to-1 ratio that will change your life". In it she wrote, "just as zero degrees Celsius is a special number in thermodynamics, the 3-to-1 positivity ratio may well be a magic number in human psychology."
ellauri285.html on line 755: The first consequential re-evaluation of the mathematical modeling behind the critical positivity ratio was published in 2008 by a group of Finnish researchers from the Systems Analysis Laboratory at Aalto University (Jukka Luoma, Raimo Hämäläinen, and Esa Saarinen). The authors noted that "only very limited expl anations are given about the modeling process and the meaning and interpretation of its parameters... [so that] the reasoning behind the model equations remains unclear to the reader"; moreover, they noted that "the model also produces strange and previously unreported behavior under certain conditions... [so that] the predictive validity of the model also becomes problematic."
ellauri285.html on line 757: Later, but of more critical importance, the Fredrickson and Losada work on modeling the positivity ratio aroused the skepticism of Nick Brown, a graduate student in appl ied positive psychology, who questioned whether such work could reliably make such broad claims, and perceived that the paper´s mathematical claims underlying the critical positivity ratio were suspect. Brown contacted and ultimately collaborated with physics and maths professor Alan Sokal and psychology professor Harris Friedman on a re-analysis of the paper´s data (hereafter the Brown-Sokal-Friedman rebuttal). They argued that Losada´s earlier work on positive psychology and Fredrickson and Losada´s 2005 critical positivity ratio paper contained "numerous fundamental conceptual and mathematical errors", errors of a magnitude that compl etely invalidated their claims.
ellauri285.html on line 761: A formal retraction for the mathematical modeling elements of the Losada and Fredrickson (2005) paper was issued by the journal, American Psychologist, concluding that both the specific critical positivity ratio of 2.9013 and its upper limit were invalid. The fact that the problems with the paper went unnoticed for years despite the widespread adulatory publicity surrounding the critical positivity ratio concept contributed to a perception of social psychology as a field lacking scientific soundness and rigorous critical thinking. Sokal later stated, "The main claim made by Fredrickson and Losada is so impl ausible on its face that some red flags ought to have been raised", as would only happen broadly in graduate student Brown´s initiating the collaboration that resulted in the Brown-Sokal-Friedman rebuttal.
ellauri285.html on line 763: Building on research by Barbara Fredrickson suggesting that individuals with a higher ratio of positive to negative emotions tend to have more successful life outcomes, and on studies by Marcial Losada appl ying differential equations from fluid dynamics to human emotions,[citation needed] Fredrickson and Losada proposed as informative a ratio of positive to negative affect derived from nonlinear dynamics modelling (based on Lorenz systems), which appeared in 2005 in a paper in American Psychologist. The derived combination of expressions and default parameters led them to conclude that a critical ratio of positive to negative affect of exactly 2.9013 separated flourishing from languishing individuals, and to argue that the ideal positivity/negativity ratio lies between 2.9013 and an upper limit ratio of 11.6346. Hence, they claimed that their model predicted cut-off points for the minimum and maximum positivity ratios within which one should observe qualitative changes in an individual´s level of flourishing, specifically, that those within this range of ratios would "flourish", and those outside would "languish".[non-primary source needed] As of January 2014, the 2005 Fredrickson and Losada´s paper had been cited more than 320 times in the psychology literature.
ellauri285.html on line 768: differential equations used by Losada to calculate the critical positivity ratio use parameters taken directly from Lorenz´s simpl ified, illustrative, and arbitrary models for fluid dynamics, with Losada giving no rationale for his choice of parameters;
ellauri285.html on line 772: the butterfly-like first figure provided by Fredrickson and Losada is not a model of the data taken from their human participants, but "the results of computer simulations of the Lorenz equations, nothing more"; and based on the maths, even if precise positivity/negativity ratios could be derived, several "windows" of desirable and undesirable positivity/negativity ratios above a certain value should exist, rather than a simpl e range of ratios in which "flourishing" should occur.
ellauri285.html on line 775: With regard to these, and especially the last, the Brown-Sokal-Friedman rebuttal argues that it is likely that Fredrickson and Losada did not fully grasp the impl ications of appl ying nonlinear dynamics to their data. Brown, Sokal, and Friedman state that one can only marvel at the astonishing coincidence that human emotions should turn out to be governed by exactly the same set of equations that were derived in a celebrated article several decades ago as a deliberately simpl ified model of convection in fluids, and whose solutions happen to have visually appealing properties. An alternati
ellauri285.html on line 776: ve expl anation – and, frankly, the one that appears most pl ausible to us – is that the entire process of "derivation" of the Lorenz equations has been contrived to demonstrate an imagined fit between some rather limited empirical data and the scientifically impressive world of nonlinear dynamics.
ellauri285.html on line 779: The original rebuttal authors conclude this salvo by lamenting that the "unbridled romanticism" of which humanist psychology has been accused has not been repl aced with a rigorous evidence-based psychology—as Seligman and Csikszentmihalyi promised in their founding manifesto of positive psychology—rather, the widespread acceptance of the critical positivity ratio shows that positive psychology has betrayed this promise, stating that "the sin is now romantic scientism rather than pure romanticism is not, in our view, a great advance."
ellauri285.html on line 783: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/ea/Barbara_Fredrickson_2019.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri285.html on line 788: Marcial Francisco Losada was born in 1939 in Chile.[citation needed] He received a Ph.D. in organizational psychology from the University of Michigan. After finishing his doctoral work, Losada served as a Center for Advanced Research (CFAR) in Ann Arbor, Michigan.[when?][citation needed] In his career, Losada developed a nonlinear dynamics model, the meta learning model, to show dynamical patterns achieved by high, medium and low performing teams, where performance was evaluated based on profitability, customer satisfaction, and 360-degree feedback.[citation needed]. In pursuing these goals, he founded and served as executive director of Losada Line Consulting, which had presented past workshops and seminars at companies including Appl e, Boeing, EDS, GM, and Merck, and foundations including the Kellogg and Mellon Foundations, with high performance team-building contracts at BCI, Banchile, BHP-Billiton, Codelco, and Telefónica [better source needed].
ellauri285.html on line 797: Mikä Aalto Peopl e on?
ellauri285.html on line 798: Kuinka Aalto Peopl e:a käytetään
ellauri285.html on line 811: Former CFO, currently on a soul searching mission without a definitive future pl ans.
ellauri288.html on line 37: Jaxuhali<3 play:none">Mitä vittua!
ellauri288.html on line 71: ”Historierna om hans tvivelaktiga affärsmetoder är många. De handlar om riggade auktioner, falska uppl agesiffror och andra fakta i syfte att höja förskotten till hans författare. Men också en vilja att bryta mot god affärsmoral.”
ellauri288.html on line 79: Virolaisen kirjailijan Jaan Kapl inskin esittämä arvio Sofin ”Puhdistuksesta”. Hän, jota on vaikea uskottavasti syyttää neuvostovallan lakeijaksi, kirjoittaa: ”Minun ainoa mutta sitäkin vakavampi vastaväitteeni kirjaa kohtaan on se, että sen uskotellaan olevan realistinen kertomus elämästä Neuvosto-Eestissä. Sofi Oksanen, jolla ei ole ollut suoranaista kosketusta siihen aikaan ja niihin tapahtumiin, joita hän kuvaa, on ottanut palasia meidän elämästämme, neulonut ne yhteen jonkun ikivanhan ideologis-myyttisen kirjallisuuden sääntöjen mukaan ja myy niitä nyt Lännessä. Hän myy jotakin, mikä on olevinaan meidän elämäämme, mutta mikä ei sitä ole.” On blogissaan leimannut Sofi Oksasen Göebbelsin veroiseksi propagandistiksi.
ellauri288.html on line 108: Kirjailija Sofi Oksasen ikä on tuonut hänelle lisää itsevarmuutta. - Nykyisin tiedän tarkasti, mitä haluan, enkä ole enää johdateltavissa. Kaksi caffè lattea tupl aespressolla ja viski. Kirjailija Sofi Oksaselle maistuvat tänä iltapäivänä vain lämmikkeet.
ellauri288.html on line 126: Bagladyt ovat nousseet esiin viime vuosina. He ovat naisia, jotka haluavat tulla nähdyiksi tekevinä, pärjäävinä, rohkeina ja itsevarmoina. – Tunnen ihmisiä, jotka ovat käyneet pimeässä tehdyissä kauneusleikkauksissa ja joille on tullut seurauksena vakavia kompl ikaatioita. Eräs kaverini siis, en minä.
ellauri288.html on line 261: Ensinnäkin kielen puhdistaminen tuo suuhun raikkaan tunteen. Lisäksi se vähentää suuhun kertynyttä pl akkia. - Kielen pinnalle kertyy samaa katetta kuin hampaisiin. Kielen puhdistaminen vähentää yleisempiä suun sairauksia, kuten kariesta, hampaiden reikiintymistä ja ientulehdusta.
ellauri288.html on line 276: NPR, full name National Public Radio, is a privately and publicly funded non-profit membership media organization that serves as a national syndicator to 797 public radio stations in the United States of America. Noam Chomsky has criticized NPR as being biased toward ideological power and the status quo. Consumers of information from NPR contend that NPR does its job well. In April 2023, Twitter made the decision to label NPR, as well as the PBS, BBC, and Voice of America as government-funded media outlets following backlash from critics who accused the pl atform of bias. Twitter initially labeled accounts linked to countries like Russia and China but faced criticism for not appl ying the same labels to media organizations from Western countries. In response, the company expanded its policy to include NPR.
ellauri288.html on line 285: ”Oksanen osaa kertoa tarinan rakentaen juonen mitä kiinnostavimmalla monikerroksisella tavalla. Aliiden, Zaran tai Zaran isoisän (joka piileskelee ullakolla) vuorottelevat tietoisuudet eri näkökulmasta. Haaretz Book Suppl ement, Israel
ellauri288.html on line 296: In their own words, in 2005, they intended to "remain a newspaper rooted in a Christian tradition and to be a source of contempl ation and inspiration for everyone, churchgoer or not, who feels a need for moral and spiritual orientation."
ellauri288.html on line 350: Men in Aida is a homophonic translation of Book One of Homer's Iliad into a farcical bathhouse scenario, perhaps alluding to the homoerotic aspects of ancient Greek culture. It was written in 1983 by the language poet David Melnick, and is an exampl e of poetic postmodernism. In 2015, all three books of the Iliad translated by Melnick were published by independent publishing house Uitgeverij under the title Men in Aïda.
ellauri288.html on line 404: Kapl inskilta kapuloita Sofin rattaisiin
ellauri288.html on line 406: Aikuisena Kapl inski uskoi, että hänen isänsä oli kaukainen juutalainen ja että hän oli Jacob Frankin sukulainen. Kapl inski olikin hyvin lisääntymiskykyinen: 4 kirjailijan ja Tarton lelumuseon johtajan Tiia Toometin kanssa, 1 ensimmäisestä avioliitostaan Nürkki-Küllike Kapl inskin kanssa ja 1 klassikon Anne Lillin kanssa.
ellauri288.html on line 411: Hänen äitinsä oli virolainen "tanssija" ja isänsä Jerry Bonifacy Edward Kapl inski, puolalainen Tarton yliopiston filologian professori, jonka Neuvostoliiton joukot pidättivät ja kuoli nälkään Neuvostoliiton työleirillä vuonna 1945. Hänen isosetänsä oli puolalainen taidemaalari ja poliittinen aktivisti Leon Kapl iński.
ellauri288.html on line 412: Jaan Kapl inski oli yksi niistä intellektuelleista, jotka tukivat Toomas Hendrik Ilvesin ehdokkuutta. Jaan Kapl inski ei oikeastaan ole maailmanluokan kirjailija -
ellauri288.html on line 451: Jaan Kapl inski (22. tammikuuta 1941 Tartto–8. elokuuta 2021) oli virolainen runoilija, filosofi, kasvitieteellisen puutarhan haravoija ja kulttuuripelle. Kapl inskin äiti Nora Raudsepp oli virolainen, isä Jerzy Kapl iński puolalainen, ja taustassa oli myös juutalaisuutta. Jaan Kapl inski oli puolivuotias, kun NKVD pidätti hänen isänsä, joka kuoli Vjatlagin leirillä Kirovin alueella. Isättömyys on Kapl inskin teema teoksessa Kirje isälle (2003, suomennos 2005). Sitä Jaan katkeroitui koko zydeemille.
ellauri288.html on line 453: Kapl inski koki olevansa "rajamaan" (ei kuitenkaan Ukrainan) ihminen. Hänen oli vaikea määritellä itseään kansallisuuden, ammatin, erikoisalan, uskonnon tai maailmankatsomuksen suhteen. Uskontojen suhteen vastaus oli synkretia, sillä hän löysi marxismi-leninismin vastapainoksi idän uskonnot.
ellauri288.html on line 455: Kapl inskin runoissa ja esseissä näkyi hänen kiinnostuksensa ympäristökysymyksiin, kielen filosofisiin kysymyksiin, klassiseen kiinalaiseen runouteen ja filosofiaan, buddhalaisuuteen ja esikristilliseen virolaisuuteen.lähde? Hän oli katolinen käännynnäinen kuten Timo Soini.
ellauri288.html on line 457: Kapl inski opiskeli hyödytöntä kielitiedettä Tarton yliopistossa ja työskenteli kielentutkijana, sosiologina, ekologina ja toimittajana. Hänellä oli merkittävä osa neuvostomiehityksen vastaisessa kansalaisliikkeessä 1980-luvulla. Neuvostoliiton romahduksen jälkeen eli Viron uudelleenitsenäistymisen alkuvuosina 1992–1995 Kapl inski oli Viron parlamentin Riigikogun jäsen.
ellauri288.html on line 459: Kapl inski huomasi kesäkuussa 2020 sairastavansa ALS-tautia.Hän kuoli 80-vuotiaana seuraavana vuonna 2021. Ilta tuo kaiken takaisin.
ellauri288.html on line 461: Tuglas-seuralla on Kapl inskista paljon lisäinfoa. Pidemmän ajan kuluessa kirjoitettuja pidempiä ja vakavampia esseitä kuten Usk on uskumatus (Usko on uskomattomuus 1998) ei suomennettu, ei liioin kevyempiä lehdissä ilmestyneitä kolumneja kuten Kajakas võltsmunal (Lokki valemunalla) 2000. Omaelämäkerrallinen lyhytproosakokoelma Kust tuli öö (Kusta tuli yöllä,1990) jäi sekin suomentamatta.
ellauri288.html on line 462: Jaan Kapl inskin runoudessa näkyvä arkisen asteittainen esille nouseminen ja metaforan katoaminen ovat askeleita uuteen kypsymiseen ja kehuihin.
ellauri288.html on line 464: Vuonna 2000 Jaan Kapl inski sai Viron kulttuurirahaston suuren vuosipalkinnon. "Reaaliluvut" ilmestyi viroksi Vikerkaaren toimittaja Kajar Pruulin viruttamana. Se on kirjoitettu alunperin venäjäksi, kielellä, jota Jaan Kapl inski itse on kutsunut suureksi vanhaksi rakkaudekseen. Hyi!
ellauri288.html on line 466: Neuvosto-Virossa Jaan Kapl inski eli sisäisessä pakolaisuudessa (Jaan Kapl inski elab sisepaguluses). Jaan oli kuin mutanttikoira Hektor joka oli jäänyt asumaan yksin taloon, joka on saavuttamaton kuin linnoitus. Jaan halusi pois CCCPstä mutta se sitten jäi. Olisi pitänyt opiskella Lotmanin luona venäläistä kirjallisuutta ja seurata tällä tavalla isän jälkiä eikä opiskella ranskaa, jota opetettiin yliopistossakin peruskoulutasolla. Äitikin osasi sitä paremmin.
ellauri288.html on line 468: Kapl inski on monikielisyyteen pyrkivänä kirjailijana kirjoittanut runoutta ja kolumneja suomeksikin. Hän on kirjoittanut runoja ja yrittänyt kirjoittaa proosaakin englanniksi. I am a little boy. Aika ja ympäristö on niin vihamielinen runoudelle. Hänhän on kasvanut ja elänyt koko elämänsä sosialismin laboratoriossa. Hän on lukenut paljon ja hänen älykkyytensä on poikkeuksellista. Hän näkee oman erikoisuutensa paradoksina. Jumalan mukaan hän on apostoli Paavalin sanoin skandaali ja typerys.
ellauri288.html on line 482: Ette ehkä honanneet, mutta Kapl inski on tässä salakavalasti kuvannut ihmiskasvoista sosialismia humanistisesta näkökulmasta mutanttikoiran tunnustuksen kautta. Mutta aina hereillä oleva kritiikki on pannut merkille, että Kapl inskin Hektorissa on filosofisesti kehitelty ideoita, jotka ovat tuttuja myös nykyaikaiselle ihmiselle!
ellauri288.html on line 484: Esimerkiksi geenitutkija Richard Dawkins antaa heti suositun kirjansa Viesti miljardien vuosien takaa (suom. Risto Varteva WSOY 1985) alussa ymmärtää Darwinin evoluutioteoriaa seuraten, että "Kopioituminen johtaa aina luonnonvalintaan ja sitä kautta siihen ylenpalttiseen monipuolisuuteen, jota me kutsumme elämäksi (s. 9)". Niinpä – mikä mielenkiintoista – tarkkojen kopioiden sekaan sattuu silloin tällöin myös "kopioinnissa sattumalta tulleita rakennevirheitä (s. 9)". Jaan Kapl inski on tästä elävä - no, aikansa elänyt - esimerkki.
ellauri288.html on line 499: Kapl inskin kolmannessa proosateoksessa Reaalarvud ollaan tekemisissä Lotmanin semioottisen koulukunnan salaliiton kanssa. Insinööri R (reaaliluvut, tämä vihje esiintyy Hoblan ristikossa usein), oli löytänyt matemaattisen yhteyden enkelien luvuttoman sotajoukon ja reaalimaailman välillä. Alef nolla on Beth nolla, se päätteli. Kontinuumihypoteesi ei ilman valinta-axioomaa kyllä todistu. Se on hyvin vahva existenssioletus.
ellauri288.html on line 508: Ja "onko elämällä ja luonnolla jokin tarkoitus vai ei". Sanoisin että ei. Wittgensteinin mukaan, jonka kanssa Kapl inski on tunnustanut kokevansa sielunveljeyttä, filosofia on kutinaa ja Kapl inski "rapsuttaa" kuin koira kirppuja.
ellauri288.html on line 515: Kapl inskin inspiroija ja vaikuttaja oli amerikkalainen teologi ja filosofi Alan Watts (1915–1973). Vastenmielinen sadisti-isä kompl ekseineen. Wattsin yhden kirjan otsikko onkin Buddhism, The Religion of No-Religion ja sehän on viroksi Usk on uskumatus (Usko on uskomattomuus)! Kapl inski itse toivoi uteliaiden toimittajien pysyvän elämästään kaukana hänen oleskellessaan mahdollisimman paljon poissa kaupungista kesähuvilallaan.
ellauri288.html on line 537: No, Kapl inskia on pidetty Nobel-ehdokkaana, mutta hänen runoutensa ei edusta sellaista maailmanluokan kirjallisuutta, kuten hänen hengenveljensä ja viroksi kääntämänsä nobelisti Tomas Tranströmer, johon verrattuna Kapl inskin ilmaisuvalikko on kapea ja temaattisesti toisteinen.
ellauri288.html on line 583: Rohkaisuryyppy on otettavissa Supl asta. Supl a ja Ilta-Sanomat ovat osa Sanoma-konsernia.
ellauri290.html on line 37: PEKKA ja PÄTKÄ SUEZ'illa play:none">Eihän asia kyllä minulle kuulu
ellauri290.html on line 69: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bd/UN_Palestine_Partition_Versions_1947.jpg/440px-UN_Palestine_Partition_Versions_1947.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri290.html on line 375: * UNSCP Report, Vol. I, Suppl ement No. 11, Chapter VI, Part II, Para. 5, p. 54
ellauri290.html on line 828: VIDEO
ellauri294.html on line 38:
ALPARSLAN SUURI SELZHUKKI play:none">Reittiopas
ellauri294.html on line 54: VIDEO
ellauri294.html on line 56: För att stötta armén försöker många ukrainare att samla in pengar på olika sätt. Ett av de mer framgångsrika sätten har visat sig vara att sälja nakenbilder. SVT har träffat internetpl attformen Teronlyfans som dragit in donationer i miljonklassen.
ellauri294.html on line 63: Anasasia Kuchmenko är grundare av pl attformen och hon och hennes volontärer både hyllas och kritiseras för det de gör.
ellauri294.html on line 114: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dd/M%C3%BC%C5%9Fir_Gazi_Mustafa_Kemal_Pa%C5%9Fa%2C_Bal%C4%B1kesir%2C_1923.png/440px-M%C3%BC%C5%9Fir_Gazi_Mustafa_Kemal_Pa%C5%9Fa%2C_Bal%C4%B1kesir%2C_1923.png" />
ellauri294.html on line 253: VIDEO
ellauri294.html on line 313: Parmas selittää edelleen, että messias on "henkilö, joka on tullut pelastamaan koko maailman. Joten tuntuu kuin olisit Ukrainan pl astaja."
ellauri294.html on line 347: Ovidiuxen hurskaat vanhuxet, varmaan 70:set, jotka antoi aamiaismajoitusta Asterixin ja Oblelixin näköisille Hermexelle ja Zeulle. Kyllä kannatti sillä loput muumit pyyhki kostava tuhotulva mennessään. Tarinan syntysijoilla asustaneet Lystran roomalaismamut luuli massiivista Barbapapaa Juppiterixi ja pientä vääräsäärtä Paavalia Mercuriuxexi. Se ilo loppui lyhyeen, sillä saatuaan kaverien papereista selvän lykaonilaiset kivittivät ne. Paavali selvisi pelkillä naarmuilla. Fryxejä haukuttiin orjixi ja lykaonilaisia rosvoixi. Paavali käytti dipl omaattisempaa nimitystä galatalaiset.
ellauri294.html on line 377: ploads/2017/01/03_Alma_Tadema.jpg" />
ellauri294.html on line 412: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c8/Nuremberg_chronicles_-_Strange_Peopl e_-_Umbrella_Foot_%28XIIr%29.jpg" />
ellauri294.html on line 497: VIDEO
ellauri294.html on line 519: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/7/70/The_Fox_and_the_Hound.jpg" />
ellauri294.html on line 553: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/5/5f/The_Fox_and_the_Hound_1967_novel_cover.jpg" />
ellauri294.html on line 592: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/9/9b/%22The_Belstone_Fox%22_%281973%29.jpg" />
ellauri294.html on line 605: 40th Anniversary Edition -DVD:n kansikuva sisältää kuvatekstejä "Alkuperäinen ajaton tarina todesta ystävyydestä" ja "Tarina joka innoitti Ketun ja koiran" viitaten vuoden 1981 Disney-elokuvaan. Tämä on ristiriidassa sen kanssa, että Disney pitää Daniel P. Mannixin vuoden 1967 romaania The Fox and the Hound elokuvansa lähdemateriaalina. Vaikea sanoa, sanoisi Raid-elokuvan Raid. Kuka pl agioi ketä, joku jotakuta kuitenkin. Niinpä.
ellauri294.html on line 671: play:block;height:300px;position:relative;overflow:hidden;width:500px;>
ellauri294.html on line 673:
plainsc.web713.discountasp.net/Data/Sites/1/pagepics/amelia-newport-margaret-mead-2.jpg" height="100%" style="position:absolute;left:200px" />
ellauri294.html on line 679:
plainsc.web713.discountasp.net/Data/Sites/1/louisa_may_alcott_headshot.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri294.html on line 680:
plainsc.web713.discountasp.net/Data/Sites/1/amelia1.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri294.html on line 707:
ploads/2019/05/StasyQ-KillerQ-Set-334-_image_12.jpg" height="350.px" />
ellauri294.html on line 710: Russell Herman Conwell (15. helmikuuta 1843 – 6. joulukuuta 1925) oli yhdysvaltalainen baptistiministeri, motivoiva puhuja, hyväntekijä, kirjailija, lakimies ja kirjailija. Hänet muistetaan parhaiten Philadelphian Tem
pl e Universityn perustajana ja ensimmäisenä presidenttinä, baptistitemppelin pastorina ja inspiroivasta Bald Beaver-luennostaan "Acres of Diamonds". Teoksen keskeinen ajatus on, että mahdollisuutta, saavutusta tai onnea ei tarvitse etsiä muualta kuin Paulo Coelhon tyhmä alkemisti; resurssit kaiken hyvän saavuttamiseen ovat läsnä omassa yhteisössä. Tämän teeman on kehittänyt johdanto-anekdootti, jonka Conwell on luotottanut arabioppaalle, miehestä, joka halusi löytää timantteja niin kovasti, että myi omaisuutensa ja lähti turhaan etsimään niitä. Kotinsa uusi omistaja havaitsi, että rikas timanttikaivos sijaitsi juuri tuolla kiinteistöllä. Conwell käsittelee teemaa esimerkkien avulla menestyksestä, neroudesta, palvelusta tai muista hyveistä, jotka koskevat tavallisia amerikkalaisia, jotka ovat hänen yleisönsä nykyaikana: "kannattaa kaivaa omalla takapihallasi!"
ellauri294.html on line 716: Conwellin kyky perustaa Tem
pl e University ja hänen muut kansalaisprojektinsa johtuivat suurelta osin tuloista, jotka hän ansaitsi tästä puheesta.
ellauri297.html on line 33:
HOOSEA AJASSAMME play:none">Finnin puristelua
ellauri297.html on line 44: Materialism is the butt of every Dad joke. A child comes to the father of their youth, and say, “Dad, I’m hungry,” to which the beloved father figure re
pl ies, “Hello Hungry, I’m Dad!” It pokes fun at the idea that our whole identity could be the sum total of our physical markers, desires and chemical reactions. This would be akin to someone ‘coming out,’ to us and us responding, “Hello Gay! I’m Cis!” It’s ludicrous! But, our culture still does it–quite a bit, actually. We define ourselves and others concretely based on what we own rather than on what we cannot see; our souls.
ellauri297.html on line 48: Founder, Ammi Ruhama Community Christian Union. Living History Interpretor. Baker. Milford Baby and Toddler Group Organizer. Bada Bing Pizza Chef. Sunnymead Residential Home Kitchen Assistant. Be Life Cafe and Market
pl ace Operations Personnel. Summit Christian Academy Steward. I vacuum the hallways, library, music room and preschool room. I clean the bathrooms and mop the gym/cafeteria floor. I also maintain the general premises. Dan the Handy Man. Do you need handy work done around your house, but don't want to have to call in the big guys with the big price? My name is Daniel Bacon and I am an experienced handy man living right here in Clarks Summit. If you need your lawn cut, bushes trimmed, garden weeded, fence painted / stained or just about any other job done, then call me at 570-585-9595 or email me at contactdanielbacon@gmail.com and we'll set up a time for me to come and see if I am the right man for the job. Wait! let me…Show more... (Ouch!) I emptied the front cash register as well as filling in as a sandwich maker. I created schedules and activities for the campers and staff to participate in. I also led worship during the evenings. Student janitor.
ellauri297.html on line 90: coulda been a contender. I coulda been somebody.” Despite its innovative features and stellar reputation as a driver’s car, the Imp was never a contender. This tiny machine was launched too late to compete, beset with corporate mistakes and bedeviled by a lack of development. As the BBC program “The Car’s the Star” described it, the Imp was “the wrong car built at the wrong time by the wrong peo
pl e at the wrong
pl ace.”
ellauri297.html on line 370:
ploads/2014/06/cc.png" />
ellauri297.html on line 373: Ex-Oldest Man In The World Dead In NYC At 111; He Put On Tefillin Two Months Ago For First Time Since His Bar Mitzvah, but it did not help. He is dead. World’s oldest man living confirmed as Juan Vicente Pérez aged 112 in Venezuela. Bugger it. Besides agriculture, one of Juan's most important passions is to build a strong relationship with God and his family. He is grateful for his life, as well as the food and the peo
pl e that surround him.
ellauri297.html on line 401: Check the condom periodically during use for breaks. If a condom breaks or comes off during sex, re
pl ace it immediately and consider using emergency contraception such as the emergency contraception pill if your partner can get pregnant An emergency contraception pill (sometimes called the morning-after pill) prevents pregnancy before it happens by delaying ovulation or blocking fertilization; it is not an "abortion pill."
ellauri297.html on line 541: Mutharika kuoli sydänkohtaukseen huhtikuussa 2012. Hänen seuraajakseen tuli varapresidentti Joyce Banda, joka oli eteläisen Afrikan ensimmäinen naispresidentti. Banda teki monia uudistuksia: hän devalvoi kwachan 40 prosentilla ja myi 15 miljoonalla dollarilla presidentin suihkukoneen. Rahayksikön devalvointia kritisoitiin Malawissa, mutta esimerkiksi Kansainvälinen valuuttarahasto tuki sitä. Kansainvälistä rahaa alkoikin pian löytyä myös Malawiin, ja maan talouskasvu tu
pl aantui kahden ensimmäisen hallintovuoden aikana. Bandan kauden loppuvuosia vaurioitti Cashgate-skandaali, jonka aikana 100 miljoonaa Yhdysvaltain dollaria katosi valtion kirstusta.
ellauri297.html on line 552:
ploads/2017/11/tintti-afrikassa-kuvakaappaus.jpeg" />
ellauri297.html on line 567: Olli on julkaissut aimo läjän reportaasheja ja vizikirjoja. Hän harrastaa kirjallisuutta, elokuvia, raviurheilua ja sikareita. Olli on Helsingin Suomalaisen Klubin johtokunnan jäsen vuodesta 2005 ja varapuheenjohtaja vuodesta 2009. Ollilla on professorin arvonimi. Another Olli Alho (Valmari) was a Finnish hurdler. He com
pl eted the men's 110 metres hurdles at the 1952 Summer Olympics. Suomalaisten Onnela oli Dar Es Salaamissa. Siellä suomalaiset miehet nussi mustia jotka olivat kuin lapsinaisia. Laiskat lakukepit lahjottiin viinapulloilla. Koillis-Suomen luostarit oli Lönnrotin käydessä pikemminkin rosvopesiä, viinaa tinkasivat. Kylät täynnä porovarkaita. Pelkkää roskajoukkoa. Sanoivat kuin ritarit Monty Pythonissa: Ni ni, se on meillä tapana.
ellauri297.html on line 596: – Om jag gör en film i krigstid kan jag inte ignorera kriget. Under demonstrationerna på Himmelska fridens torg tog jag med ett nyhetsklipp i en film och insåg att film finns kvar ganska länge. Kanske kan någon se och förstå senare. Han slutar med Slava CCCP! och får ap
pl åder.
ellauri297.html on line 599:
ploads/2020/10/Frank-Martela-640x420.jpg" />
ellauri297.html on line 640:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/08/Richard-ryan-600x400_acu_RT_HiRes.png/440px-Richard-ryan-600x400_acu_RT_HiRes.png" />
ellauri299.html on line 33:
MUSTA TORNI play:none">Kauhua
ellauri299.html on line 34:
ploads/2012/06/Dark-Tower-HBO-Series-Air.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri299.html on line 45: Ainut lohtu on, että tää termiittiapinoiden ku
pl a näyttää muodostuvan erittäin lyhytaikaisexi kupruxi maailmanhistorian mittakaavassa. Darwinin vuosimiljoonan virhesijoitus kasvaa muutaman tuhannen vuoden "historian" aikana kuin pullataikina ja pilaa ympäristönsä izelleen ja syömilleen eläinystäville (sika, lammas, lehmä, kana, kala) sopimattomaxi. Eipä aikaakaan niin tääkin ku
pl a puhkeaa, kun apinat alkaa hädissään tappaa toisiaan ja paistua ja tukehtua muutenkin kuin kärpäset. Katoovat maan pinnalta kuin dinosauruxet. No jäähän meriin sinilevät ja rannalle torakat, jotka voivat istua alas joukolla ja miettiä, mistä seuraavaxi aletaan tää kehittyminen.
ellauri299.html on line 91: Helppohan se on jälkikäteen ennustaa, kuten nähtiin Danielin kirjassa. Niinkuin tää palestiinalaisten laivan räjäytys: Sol Phryne [nimi oli kirjoitettu "Sol Friner" Topolin
pl ärässä, joka on nähtävästi käännetty "venäjänkielisestä alkuteoxesta
The Kremlin Wife "] was built in Japan in 1948 as Taisetsu Maru. From 1967 to 1974, she was owned by Efthymiades Line and used for regular ferry duties between Greek islands as Eolis. In 1974, she was purchased by Sol Maritime Services Ltd., renamed Sol Phryne and was then used in the Middle East, notably evacuating Palestinian guerrillas from Beirut in 1982. She was sunk during an attempt to ferry Palestinian deportees to Haifa, Israel.
ellauri299.html on line 134:
Kerri: Kun luin tämän kirjan ensimmäisen kerran (vuosia ja vuosia sitten), muistan lukeneeni sen kaiken yhdessä päivässä ja ajattelin: "Vau! Se oli niin voimakasta!" Luin sen vihdoin uudestaan ja se ei kestänyt. Michael on hurskas, pyhämpi kuin sinä, jolla on suuri "valkoisen miehen pelastaja" -kom
pl eksi. Hän viittaa pyhimyksensä muutaman kerran ja siihen, kuinka häntä ei voida arvostella siitä, että hän teki niin hyvän ja jalon asian uhraamalla itsensä vähemmän onnekkaiden auttamiseksi. Ja hän aikoo pelastaa Kaikki! Hän on niin upea ja täynnä itseään. Olin iloinen, että hän lopulta osti itselleen sängyn, koska se oli vähän paljon. Hänen entiset työtoverinsa ovat nyt kaikki "pahiksia" koko kirjan ajan lähes loppuun asti, jolloin hän yhtäkkiä tuntee olonsa pahaksi, koska useimmat heistä ovat viattomia ja tietämättömiä ja se oli TODELLA VAIN Chance, joka oli pahis... Pidän siitä, että se tuo esiin vakavia kodittomuuden ahdinkoja ja että asiat eivät maagisesti muutu, elleivät kaikki ala ottamaan sitä vakavasti. (Se olisikin todella maagista...) Mutta todella, se on ainoa lunastava tekijä.
ellauri299.html on line 142:
E: Jumalauta tämä oli kauheaa. Kirjoitus on hyvä. Mutta se kertoo komeasta valkoisesta miesjuristista, joka huomaa, että elämässä on muutakin kuin raha ja viehättävä, menestyvä vaimo. Hän huomaa, että jotkut ihmiset ovat kodittomia, hänestä tulee monien köyhien pelastaja ja hän saa henkilökohtaisesti siivouksen ja tapaa uuden tyttöystävän matkan varrella. Mielenkiintoista tietoa asuntolainsäädännöstä (varsinkin jenkkivuokraisäntien lainkierrosta ja lakifirmojen konnailusta norminpurkumielessä siihen liittyen) matkan varrella, mutta koko tämä yksiulotteinen pelastajakom
pl eksi on peruuttamaton.
ellauri299.html on line 148:
Michael Vattenfall: Very disappointing. I would expect a Grisham book to be lighter reading, but this was totally unconvincing and lacked believability. The whole purpose of the book is based upon the transformation of the main character's view of the homeless, but I didn't buy it. Well I did, but I regret it now. Money com
pl etely wasted.
ellauri299.html on line 156:
Anie: After 130 pages of preaching, with no
pl ot in sight, I gave up. This book is so full of
pl atitudes, generalizations, and sim
pl istic solutions that it belongs in the harlequin category. There are too many good books with great
pl ots out there to waste any more time on this book.
ellauri299.html on line 173: Shelters are key components of America’s response to homelessness. The unsheltered population has grown yearly since 2015, amounting to a 35 percent increase over a seven-year span. In 2020, The number of peo
pl e living in poverty in The U.S. of A. increased by approximately 3.3 million peo
pl e. This trend continued into 2021 when nearly 41.4 million peo
pl e, or 12.8 percent of the U.S. population, were counted in this group. Certain racial groups have even higher rates of poverty, including Black peo
pl e (21.8 percent), American Indian and Alaska Native peo
pl e (21.4 percent), and Hispanics/Latinos (17.5 percent). Peo
pl e living in poverty struggle to afford necessities such as housing, food, and medical care.
ellauri299.html on line 175: For over a decade, the nation has not made any real progress in reducing the number of Americans at risk of literal homelessness. Despite decreasing trends in peo
pl e living doubled up overall, the rise in severe housing cost numbers are concerning. Even more troubling are the risks that inflation rising to a 40-year high in 2022, expiring eviction moratoria, and fading Emergency Rental Assistance dollars pose to those at risk of experiencing homelessness.
ellauri299.html on line 176: In 1984, Snyder endured a fifty-one-day hunger strike to call attention to the neglect of the homeless. With his reelection a month away, President Reagan boldly announced his
pl ans to turn the building into a model shelter for the homeless. Snyder ended his strike. Everyone was happy. After the election, Reagan went back on his promise, and all sorts of nasty litigation ensued. Snyder committed suicide on 1990.
ellauri299.html on line 202: Melkein kaikkien synnytystä edeltävien kom
pl ikaatioiden, joiden alun perin uskottiin johtuvan suoraan PCE:stä, havaittiin johtuvan muista tekijöistä, kuten äidin huonosta ravitsemuksesta, muiden lääkkeiden käytöstä, masennuksesta ja synnytyshoidon puutteesta.
ellauri299.html on line 230: Olin kuullut tämän aiemmin. Häpeämätöntä ahneutta piti ihailla. Se oli hieman karkeampi versio siitä, mitä meillä oli opetettu lapsena: työskentele kovasti ja tee paljon, ja jollain tavalla koko yhteiskunta hyötyisi. Rip
pl e effect, enemmän kuin riittävästi murusia tippuu köyhille rikkaan pöydältä. - Kuinka paljon sinulla on?" kysyin. Ahneeksi
ellauri299.html on line 274: Frank Lake, found 50 km southeast of Calgary near High River, Alberta, is a productive wetland important to hundreds of bird species. Once com
pl etely dry, this wetland has been saved from drainage and drought through a progressive partnership between industry, government and ourselves.
ellauri299.html on line 280: Frank Lake (6. kesäkuuta 1914 – 10. toukokuuta 1982) oli brittiläinen psykiatri ja yksi pastoraalisen neuvonnan pioneereista Yhdistyneessä kuningaskunnassa. Vuonna 1962 hän perusti Kliinisen teologian yhdistyksen, jonka ensisijaisena tavoitteena on tehdä papistosta tehokkaampia kuuntelijoina ymmärtämään ja hyväksymään seurakuntalaistensa henkilökohtaisten vaikeuksien psykologinen alkuperä (katso lyhennetty kliininen teologia, luku 1, Kuuntelemisen merkitys ja arvo dialogi'). Hänen vuonna 1958 aloittamansa pastoraalisen neuvonnan koulutukseen kuitenkin värvättiin lopulta eri alojen ammattilaisia ja maallikoita eri kirkkokunnista. Seminaareihin osallistui useita tuhansia ihmisiä
pl us Patti Mulkkinen.
ellauri299.html on line 337: HUAC kutsui Rubinin kuulusteltavaxi Washingtoniin, mutta sen sijaan, että hän olisi vedonnut viidenteen lisäykseen, kuten oli tavallista, hän astui huoneeseen pukeutuneena vuokrattuun 1700-luvun Amerikan vapaussota-univormuun ja väitti ylpeänä olevansa Jeffersonin ja Painen jälkeläinen. "Mikään ei ole amerikkalaisempaa kuin vallankumous", hän sanoi komitealle. Rubin, joka osoitti täydellistä huolimattomuutta tai huolen puutetta, puhalsi kevyesti saippuaku
pl ia kongressin jäsenten kyseenalaistaessa hänen kommunistisen sidonnaisuutensa. Myöhemmin hän esiintyi HUAC:n edessä paljasrintaisena sissinä Viet Cong -pyjamassa, sotamaalilla ja lelu M-16 -kiväärillä, ja myöhemmin joulupukkina.
ellauri299.html on line 389:
pl/wp-content/u
pl oads/2013/10/Preikestolen.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri299.html on line 395:
ploads/2017/10/1614022-7933-xxxlibz.com.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri299.html on line 415: Descartes suggested that Hobbes was more accom
pl ished in moral philosophy than elsewhere, but also that he had wicked views there (Descartes 1643, 3.230-1). Descartes also worried that Hobbes was "aiming to make his reputation at my expense, and by devious means" (Descartes 1641b, 100).
ellauri299.html on line 435: Mersennen pointti oli itse asiassa melko lähellä väitettä jumalallisesta kaikkivaltiudesta, jota paavi Urbanus VIII ehdotti Galileolle vuonna 1623 ja jonka Galileo, hieman ironisesti, laittoi Sim
pl icion suuhun vuoden 1632 Dialogon loppulauseissa: Ihminen ei voi olettaa tietävänsä kuinka maailma todella on, koska Jumala olisi voinut saada aikaan samat vaikutukset tavoilla, joita ihmiset eivät kuvitelleet (ks. Galileo, 1890–1909, VII, 488). Kenties kaikki on vain huijausta, ne tekevät sen peileillä, vaan koska niitä huvitti tehä niin.
ellauri299.html on line 474: Ilkka Malmbergin mukaan Honkajoen re
pl iikkejä on vaikea lukea romaanista ilman että Tarmo Mannin ääni alkaa kuulua. Oven avaa Tarmo Mannin mummo, hymyilevä rouva Hagert.
ellauri299.html on line 479: Vierasta lihaa, kazelin Merjaa. Toisen Hannun exä Merja ei antanut vaikka pyysin kauniisti. Nuori, nainen, ja mahdollisimman oikealta. Perkele, saatana! Tulisi sota...jotakin selvää! Merjan perse sihisi vieressäni pitkän ässän. Saatuani palkinnon piristyin niin että saatoin sujautellakin taas Merjaa. Kreetiä ja
pl eetiä, ketkuja ja
pl etkuja nää Patin työttömät työnhakijat, eli työnvälttelijät. Työnvälttelyähän se näyttää olleen tää Patin kirjailijanurakin.
ellauri299.html on line 497:
VIDEO
ellauri299.html on line 501:
VIDEO
ellauri299.html on line 502:
VIDEO
ellauri299.html on line 517:
VIDEO
ellauri299.html on line 523: The official poverty rate in 2021 was 11.6 percent, with 37.9 million peo
pl e in poverty. Neither the rate nor the number in poverty was significantly different from 2020 (Figure 1 and Table A-1).
ellauri299.html on line 526: 27 percent of households – nearly double the percentage that are income poor – are living in "asset poverty." These families do not have the savings or other assets to cover basic expenses (equivalent to what could be purchased with a poverty level income) for three months if a layoff or other emergency leads to loss of income. The U.S. has the weakest social safety net of all developed nations. Sociologist Monica Prasad of Northwestern University argues that this developed because of government intervention rather than lack of it, which pushed consumer credit for meeting citizens´ needs rather than ap
pl ying social welfare policies as in Europe.
ellauri299.html on line 528: Labor market polarization has been the most severe in liberal market economies like the US, Britain, and Australia. Countries like Denmark and France have been subject to the same economic pressures, but due to their more "inclusive" (or "egalitarian") labor market institutions, such as centralized and solidaristic collective bargaining and strong minimum wage laws, they have experienced less polarization. Cross-national studies have found that European countries´ working poverty rates are much lower than the US´s. Most of this difference can be ex
pl ained by the fact that European countries´ welfare states are more generous. Grisham's folks gave offerings to the church because the Bible strongly suggested it.
ellauri299.html on line 530: Matthew Desmond, the acclaimed Princeton sociologist and author of Evicted: Poverty and Profit in the American City, thinks that poverty has barely improved in the United States over the past 50 years — and he has a theory why. Laid out in a long essay for the New York Times Magazine that is adapted from his forthcoming book Poverty, by America, Desmond’s theory im
pl icates “ex
pl oitation” in the broadest sense, from a decline in unions and worker power to a proliferation of bank fees and predatory landlord practices, all of which combine to keep the American underclass down. Relative poverty in the US has stagnated in the last 40 years.
ellauri299.html on line 534: Income has a high correlation with educational levels. Children growing up in female-headed families with no spouse present have a poverty rate over four times that of children in married-cou
pl e families. Income levels vary with age. increased from 1989 to 2013.
ellauri299.html on line 543: According to a 2017 academic study by MIT economist Peter Temin, Americans trapped in poverty live in conditions rivaling the developing world, and are forced to contend with substandard education, dilapidated housing, and few stable em
pl oyment opportunities, not to mention drugs and hookworms.
ellauri299.html on line 552: One coping mechanism is called boundary work, which happens when one group of peo
pl e valorize their own social position by comparing themselves to another group, who they perceive to be still inferior in some way. For exam
pl e, Newman (1999) found that fast food workers in New York City cope with the low-status nature of their job by comparing themselves to the unem
pl oyed, who they perceive to be even lower-status than themselves.
ellauri299.html on line 554: Having a generous welfare state does two key things to reduce working poverty: it raises the minimum level of wages that peo
pl e are willing to accept, and it pulls a large portion of low-wage workers out of poverty by providing them with an array of cash and non-cash government benefits.
ellauri299.html on line 556: Many [who? Marx and Engels maybe?] think that increasing the United States´ welfare state generosity would lower the working poverty rate. A common critique of this proposal is that a generous welfare state would not work because it would stagnate the economy, raise unem
pl oyment, and degrade peo
pl e´s work ethic.
ellauri299.html on line 633:
ploads/images/article/55365b6934099b0279c8f69c/tsunami_0.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri299.html on line 636: All det som Grein hade varit med om i Miami framstod some että surrealistiskt skämt-mrs Gombiners dogmatism, Annas dagdrömmar, hans egen avresa. Till och med orkanen han hade fått up
pl eva verkade ingå i en show som naturen med jämna mellanrum ställde till med för turisternas skull. Inom loppet av en sekund blev det nattsvart mitt på ljusa dagen. Kokosnötter föll på marken. Palmkronor slets av. Trädstammar bröts itu, buskar och blommor flög omkring i stormen likt fåglar. Grenar klövs och liknade pinnar i en väldig solfjäder som inte kunde fällas ihop. Vinden hamrade på hustaken, regnet piskade mot marken och balkonger stötade ner från fasaderna med ett stön. Elledningar slets ner. Anna var tvungen att tända ett starinljus. Den lilla lägan tycktes bara vittnesmål om det som profetiorna forkunnade: att när civilisationen hade ut
pl ånats och allt var slut skulle människorna tvingas återvända till en enda liten pappersark.
ellauri300.html on line 38:
Shoah business
baym Hudson play:none">Lisää pyllistelyä
ellauri300.html on line 295: Den fjärde "frågan" hänvisar till den antika sedvanan att äta medan han ligger på vänster armbåge och äter med höger hand. Enligt Maimonides (även kallad Rambam eller Rabbi Moshe ben Maimon) är detta "På det sätt som kungar och viktiga människor äter" (Mishnah Pesachim). Det symboliserar frihetsbegreppet, som judar skulle kunna ha en festlig måltid medan du kop
pl ar av tillsammans och njuter av varandras sällskap. Som nämnts ovan lades den här fjärde frågan efter förstörelsen av andra tem
pl et 70 e.Kr. och ersatte den redan existerande frågan om varför rostat kött äts under påskens seder. Numera äter han kyckling istället.
ellauri300.html on line 403: Dr Halperin försäkrade att han aldrig i hela sitt liv hade ätit så god gefillte fisch. Och soppan spred sig likt ett livselixir i venerna, klimparna smakade paradisiskt. Den traditionella sötningen av de bittra örterna gjorde dem obeskrivligt läckra, för Reytze hade använt sig av en blandning av nötter i äp
pl en, vin och en hemlig krydda som retade luktsinnet. Alla innehåller flavonoider som är bra för minnet.
ellauri300.html on line 430: That I could make those peo
pl e dance
ellauri300.html on line 504: The
pl ayers tried for a forward pass
ellauri300.html on line 508: While sergeants
pl ayed a marching tune
ellauri300.html on line 512: 'Cause the
pl ayers tried to take the field
ellauri300.html on line 524: Oh, and there we were all in one
pl ace
ellauri300.html on line 555: But the man there said the music wouldn't
pl ay
ellauri300.html on line 587: Particularly, the
pl ane crash that killed musicians Buddy Holly, Ritchie Valens, and "The Big Bopper" J. P. Richardson has become known as "The Day the Music Died", the expression by which McLean, a fan of Buddy Holly, dubbed it in the song. Holly's death for him symbolized the "loss of innocence" of the early rock-'n-roll generation.
ellauri300.html on line 589: In October 2022, McLean called Kanye West an 'attention-seeking fool' over his antisemitic rants. The "American Pie" singer who briefly lived in Israel said he stands with his Jewish friends. McLean lived in Israel on-and-off from 1978-1982 and he “grew to love the country and the peo
pl e. Living there changed my life forever.”
ellauri300.html on line 593: On January 18, 2016, McLean's then-wife Patrisha Shnier McLean alleged that after four hours of "terrorizing" her, McLean pinned her to a bed until she broke free and ran to the bathroom. Shnier McLean alleged that McLean attempted "to shove open the locked bathroom door behind which I had barricaded myself. As it was s
pl intering, I pushed the numbers 911." McLean was arrested on suspicion of domestic violence, and
pl ed guilty to domestic violence assault, criminal restraint, criminal mischief and making domestic violence threats. McLean paid $3,660 in fines, and was not sentenced to any jail time. Under Maine's deferred disposition law, the State agreed to dismiss the domestic violence assault charge if McLean com
pl ied with the court's orders for one year, and the charge was expunged a year later. During this time, Shnier McLean filed for divorce, citing “adultery, cruel and abusive treatment, and irreconcilable differences." McLean has denied that he physically abused Shnier McLean, and his lawyer released a statement claiming McLean agreed to the
pl ea deal in the interest of privacy. In March 2017, a Maine court granted Shnier-McLean's request for a 10-year protection order against McLean. In 2021, McLean's daughter Jackie told Rolling Stone that her father was emotionally abusive and created a cult-like household through paralyzing verbal attacks, forced isolation, and threats to withhold love or financial support.
ellauri300.html on line 600: Vid Thirty-fourth Street gick Luria in i en cafeteria. Jag tar en kopp kaffe. Det kan ju aldrig skada. Boskap äter också innan de slaktas. Magen gör vad den är avsedd för: den smälter maten. Detta var det mest absurda av allt - -varje organ gjorde vad det var avsett för: magen smälte maten, hjärnan tänkte. Efter döden började en helt ny omgång aktiviteter. Mikroberna åt upp allt; protonerna, neutronerna, elektronerna fortsatte sitt ändlösa virvlande och cirklande. Atomerna hade förmodligen ingen aning om att deras herre (ba'al) hade dött eller begått självmord. Och på vilket sätt kunde en människa rimligen betraktas som deras ägare? För dem var det likgiltigt var de bodde-i människor, i moss, i dynga. De hade sina egna atomlagar att ta hänsyn till och betraktade hela individualitetsbegreppet som näst intill löjlig. Men vilket syfte tjänade detta? Av vilket skäl roterade den här
pl aneten? Hur länge skulle den fortsätta att rotera kring sin axel och cirkla kring solen? Det måste finnas en mening någonstans.
ellauri300.html on line 613:
pload/w_1920,h_1358,ar_1.4134275618374559,dpr_1,c_fill/q_auto:eco,f_auto,fl_lossy/v1686099616/39-1125587647fd5c205960" width="100%" />
ellauri300.html on line 627: Upporikkaan Morris Hallen nainutta Estheriä panettaa Hertz Grein niin ettei se saa unta. Kuin Yom Kippurina, mitt hjärta känner min själs bitterhet. Hjärnan mal och mal som hos den onde Titus som hade sönder tem
pl et.
ellauri300.html on line 636: Titus was one of at least two younger men that Paul disci
pl ined and described as his “sons in the faith that we share” (Titus 1:4). The other man is Timothy, and the second letter to the Corinthians is addressed as from Paul and Timothy to the church in Corinth (2 Corinthians 1:1). Both Timothy and Titus served as Paul’s messengers and traveling companions, and they both went on to lead churches. Paul not only mentored them, but he also advised them in individual letters about their next steps. Matin stepit.
ellauri300.html on line 638: Titus’ background is not ex
pl ained, other than the fact he was Gentile and apparently never circumcised (Paul had checked, Galatians 2:4). This is an interesting point, since Timothy was half-Greek, and not circumcised either! Still, Paul chose to circumcise Timothy to honor the Jews in an area that the two of them were ministering in (Acts 16:1-5). Paul repeatedly mentions in his letters that circumcision is not necessary under the new covenant (though great fun), and even tells Titus to silence Christians who try to promote it (Titus 1:10-14). So, Paul’s choice to circumcise Timothy would suggest that he had a pragmatic thorn in his side. He did not require his disci
pl es to be circumcised, but if the situation called for working among Jews and it made things easier, he would gladly do it. Whether Titus ever ministered to Jewish believers is not stated, and both he and Titus worked at churches in Gentile areas (Timothy in Ephesus, Titus in Crete, and Corinth and Dalmatia).
ellauri300.html on line 642: According to Titus 1:5, Paul had left Titus at Crete to appoint elders for the church there. Paul mentions that Titus must appoint elders “in each town,” which means there were multi
pl e Christian groups (what we would think of as house churches), although they might collectively be referred to as the “church in Crete. As the letter goes on, it transitions through several subjects:
ellauri300.html on line 649: The futility of heresy (Titus 1:10-16, 3:9-11). Foolish peo
pl e at the Cretan church fool others with “useless talk” about circumcision.
ellauri300.html on line 669:
ploads/jesus-last-supper-perea.jpg" />
ellauri300.html on line 675:
ploads/2019/05/paul-slave-girl.jpg" />
ellauri300.html on line 687: Sarjat on kivempiä kuin monoliitit. Monet ellei useimmat hyvät romaanitkin on ilmestyneet följetongeina. En kaipaa tarinoissa juonta enkä jännitettä. Kaikki noi
pl ot-teoriat joissa pitää muka olla kom
pl ikaatio, ratkaisu ja paluu panopuun tai isän luo on aivan perseestä. Riittää seurata mitä tapahtuu erilaisille tyypeille eri aikoina, ei niistä tarvi rakentaa mitään temppeliä tai kehityskaaria, vain torvelot muka jännäävät mitä seuraavaksi tapahtuu. Kuitenkin aina tapahtuu sitä samaa: EAT! FUCK! KILL! Sixi luenkin ensin kirjan lopusta miten jätkän käy. Hyvässä kirjassa se on ihan yx hailea. Niin on meidänkin elämässämme.
ellauri300.html on line 721: Putin sätter Netanyahu på
pl ats inför Purim: “Sluta leva i det förflutna”
ellauri300.html on line 764: Att utrota de som är av Amaleks säd anses vara en religiös
pl ikt, särskilt under den messianska tid då Moshiach förväntas anlända. Och många rabbier anser att den tiden är inne. Lubavitcherna anser till exempel att den sista striden kommer att utkämpas under vår generation och att det judiska folket då skall utrota Amaleks säd fullständigt från jordens yta.
ellauri300.html on line 807: Det hela inträffade när profeten Elisa, som var ganska gammal, var på väg upp till byn Betel halvannan mil norr om Jerusalem. På vägen dit stötte han på det här gänget som började trakassera honom - kanske även handgri
pl igen. Uttrycket "Gå upp, flintskalle!" skulle väl i dag närmast motsvara ett "Sätt lite fart nu, gubbjävel! Iväg med dig!"
ellauri300.html on line 810: Vad som sedan hände var att det här ungdomsgänget blev attackerat av två uppretade björnhonor, vilket slutade med att 42 av dem blev mer eller mindre rivna och tilltygade. Bibeln säger inte att det fanns någon kop
pl ing alls mellan Elisas förbannelse och björnarnas angrepp, men allmänheten uppfattade det i alla fall utan tvekan som en Guds bestraffning.
ellauri300.html on line 817: The word na‘ar, which is often rendered as children/boys, means boy. The Hebrew adjective, qatan, means small. Thus we can say it’s highly unlikely the peo
pl e who mocked Elisha were “little children” or “small boys.” It’s much more probable that these were young men and quite possibly they were just servants (maybe blacks?).
ellauri300.html on line 821: Bethel was basically one big u
pl ifted middle finger to everything Moses had commanded. When God’s prophet approached this irritating city, the young men (bloody servants!) mocked him, saying, “Go up, you baldhead! Go up, you baldhead!” Not only were they ridiculing his lack of hair (which, in the Old Testament, was often associated with a skin disease), they were telling him to fly away, like his predecessor Elijah. Keep in mind that, right before this, Elijah had supposedly “gone up” to heaven in a fiery chariot (2 Kings 2).
ellauri300.html on line 824: Bears may
pl ay a significant role here, but the real animal in this overarching story is a serpent. His slithering and slandering tongue was inside the mouths of these mockers. The god whom they served, Baal, was just a mask for Satan. Good riddance, in a word, for bad rubbish.
ellauri300.html on line 843: Now order all the peo
pl e of Israel to meet me at Mount Carmel. Bring along the 450 prophets of Baal and the 400 prophets of the goddess Asherah who are supported by Queen Jezebel.”
ellauri300.html on line 850: The Lord sent fire down, and it burned up the sacrifice, the wood, and the stones, scorched the earth and dried up the water in the trench. 39 When the peo
pl e saw this, they threw themselves on the ground and exclaimed, “The Lord is God; the Lord alone is God!”
ellauri300.html on line 852: And then (this is The Part I like) Elijah ordered, “Seize the prophets of Baal; don't let any of them get away!” The peo
pl e seized them all, and Elijah led them down to Kishon Brook and killed them, all 950 of them.
ellauri300.html on line 923: So Elisha, as a prophet, saw their hardened and rebellious condition, unresponsive to correction. In the name of the Lord (i.e. by His authority) Elisha sim
pl y turned them over to the Lord and to their own devices, which had the effect of removing them from even the common protection of God. He probably said something like, “may God deal with you according to what you deserve,” or “may you be cursed for your sins of rebellion.” This would demonstrate to the city and to peo
pl e all around a vital truth: without the Lord there is no protection and that blasphemy of God’s servants and His Word in order to hinder God’s message is serious busin
ellauri301.html on line 33:
KAVERI TAPETTIIN TAPETTIIN play:none">Tappavaa
ellauri301.html on line 78: Pakko kai Henningiäkin on
pl ärätä jos haluaa tutustua ruåzalaisiin menekkikirjailijoihin, se on kai Sjövall Wahlööstä seuraava. (Vaikka mihkä se Guillou sijoittuu? Ei kyllä Guillou on kasari ja Mankell ysäri. Sit tulee Stieg ja sit nää ämmät.) Mankeli kirjoitti menestysdekkarinsa 90-luvulla tunaroituaan 2 edellistä vuosikymmentä seilorina ja lattiamanuna. Sen eka Wallenberg-prujaus on Mördare utan ansikte 1991, joka löytyi Arabian kirjaston poistohyllystä. Alempana sätitään vielä sen eteläafrikkalaiskyhhäystä nimeltä den vita lejoninnan.
ellauri301.html on line 80:
Henning Georg Mankell (efternamnet uttalas med betoning på första stavelsen), född 3 februari 1948 i Sankt Görans församling i Stockholm, död 5 oktober 2015 på Särö i Släps församling, Hallands län, var en svensk författare och dramatiker. Han var mest känd för sina deckarromaner med kriminalkommissarie Kurt Wallander i huvudrollen. Hans böcker har sålts i över 40 miljoner exem
pl ar.
ellauri301.html on line 96: A grumpy, disillusioned, diabetic alcoholic with just enough goodness at his core to fire his desire to catch murderers, Wallander appears in 13 novels and is responsible for the majority of Mankell’s worldwide sales of more than 40 million books. The murders he investigated epitomised the slow decline Mankell detected in Swedish society. As well as the racism that appalled him there was rising unem
pl oyment and violent crime, corruption, the rigidity of a patriarchy forged in Lutheran religion and the relentless breakdown of communities and society.
ellauri301.html on line 102: There is little nihilism in Swedish noir: good and bad are always clearly distinguished all the way through to the cartoonish culmination of the genre in Stieg Larsson’s trilogy about Lisbeth Salander. The only problem for Stieg´s heroes is that good no longer
pl ays in the same team with the Swedish state. Evil is firmly located in reassuringly wicked villains. Everything is privatized just like in Britain and America. All is well. (These sharp observations courtesy of The Guardian.)
ellauri301.html on line 111: Preview: The first Wallander novel Mördare utan ansikte (‘Faceless Killers’) was published in Sweden in 1991 and begins with an elderly cou
pl e being attacked in a remote farmhouse. The husband dies instantly, the wife lives long enough to whisper the word “foreign”, triggering a wave of violent racism as Wallander seeks to solve the crime.
ellauri301.html on line 121: Broederbond, Brödraskapet (till 1920 Jong Zuid Afrika, "Ungt Sydafrika") var ett hemligt sydafrikanskt boernationalistiskt samfund av brödraskapskaraktär grundat 1918 i Kapstaden av en grupp nationalistiska afrikaaner där en ung präst vid namn Jozua François Naudé (senare president) var delaktig. Organisationen var strikt segregationistisk och anses ha spelat en avgörande betydelse för etablerandet och konsoliderandet av Sydafrikas apartheidpolitik trettio år senare. Samtliga premiärministrar, presidenter och alla högre uppsatta inom Sydafrikas regering, polisväsende mm fram till regimens slutgiltiga fall 1994 (då organisationen up
pl östes) var medlemmar i Broederbond, varav flera tjänade som ordförande i sina unga år (bland annat Andries Treurnicht och Nicolaas Johannes Diederichs).
ellauri301.html on line 140: Young Wallander is a crime drama streaming television series, based on Henning Mankell's fictional Inspector Kurt Wallander. The series premiered on Netflix on September 3, 2020. Star Adam Pålsson ex
pl ained that the pre-imagining (i.e., Young Wallander being set in the present day) made more sense than a straight prequel as it allowed for the social commentary which is a strong element of Mankell's original Wallander. This choice of setting the series in the modern day has been criticised by old farts in a number of reviews.
ellauri301.html on line 193:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/0d/V%C3%A4in%C3%B6_Kustaa_Siltala_1885-1925.jpg" />
ellauri301.html on line 194:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b5/Saappaan_kyl%C3%A4n_kotitalo..jpg/250px-Saappaan_kyl%C3%A4n_kotitalo..jpg" />
ellauri301.html on line 195:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2c/V%C3%A4in%C3%B6_Kustaa_Siltala.jpg/250px-V%C3%A4in%C3%B6_Kustaa_Siltala.jpg" />
ellauri301.html on line 228: Krotoa was born in 1643 as a member of the !Uriǁ’aeǀona (Strandlopers) peo
pl e, and the niece of Autshumao, a Khoi chieftain and trader. At the age of twelve, she was taken to work in the household of Jan van Riebeeck, the first governor of the Cape colony. As a teenager, she learned Dutch and Portuguese and, like her uncle, worked as an interpreter for the Dutch who wanted to trade goods for cattle. "!Oroǀõas" received goods such as tobacco, brandy, bread, beads, copper and iron for her services. In exchange, when she visited her family her Dutch masters expected her to return with cattle, horses, seed pearls, amber, tusks, and hides. Unlike her uncle, however, who just Spike hottentot, "!Oroǀõas" was able to obtain a higher position within the Dutch hierarchy as she additionally served as a trading agent, ambassador for a high ranking chief and peace negotiator in time of war. Her story exem
pl ifies the initial dependency of the Dutch newcomers on the natives, who were able to provide reasonably reliable information about the local inhabitants.
ellauri301.html on line 230: Khoekhoen (singular Khoekhoe) (or Khoikhoi in the former orthography; formerly also Hottentots) are the traditionally nomadic pastoralist indigenous population of southwestern Africa. They are often grouped with the hunter-gatherer San (literally "Foragers") peo
pl es. The designation "Khoekhoe" is actually a kare or praise address, not an ethnic endonym, but it has been used in the literature as an ethnic term for Khoe-speaking peo
pl es of Southern Africa, particularly pastoralist groups, such as the !Ora, !Gona, Nama, Xiri and ǂNūkhoe nations. Noi huutomerkit ym ovat naxautusäänteitä, joita meille opetti svartskalle kielitieteen assari, musta Lumikki. Nyt sekin saattaa olla vitskalle pikemminkin.
ellauri301.html on line 232: The initial arrival of the Dutch in April 1652 was not viewed as negative. Many Khoi peo
pl e saw their arrival as an opportunity for personal gain as middlemen in the livestock trade; others saw them as potential allies against preexisting enemies. At the peak of her career as an interpreter, "Krotoa" held the belief that Dutch presence could bring benefits for both sides.
ellauri301.html on line 236: Circumstantial evidence supports the theory that at the time of the Dutch arrival, the girl was living with her uncle Autshumato (also known as Harry by the Dutch), the circumstantial evidence being that she showed consistent hostility to the !Uriǁ’aekua and, by association, to her own mother, who lived with them. In contrast Krotoa´s fate and fortunes were closely aligned to those of her uncle Autshumato and to his clan known as the !Uriǁ´aeǀona. The ǃUriǁ´aeǀona (rendered in Dutch as "Goringhaicona") peo
pl e who were sedentary, non-pastoral hunter-gatherers are believed to be one of the first clans to make acquaintance with the Dutch peo
pl e. Prior to the Dutch´s arrival Autshumato served as a postal agent for passing ships of a number of countries. If the theory of !Oroǀõas having lived with her uncle is true, then her early service to the VOC may not have been as violent a transition as it was made out to be.
ellauri301.html on line 238: On 3 May 1662 she was baptized by a visiting person, minister Petrus Sibelius, in the church inside the Fort de Goede Hoop. The witnesses were Roelof de Man and Pieter van der Stael. On 26 April 1664 she married a Danish surgeon by the name of Peter Havgard, whom the Dutch called Pieter van Meerhof. She was thereafter known as Eva van Meerhof (See Geni/MyHeritage).[clarification needed] She was the first Khoikoi to marry according to Christian customs. There was a little party in the house of Zacharias Wagenaer. In May 1665, they left to the Cape and went to Robben Island, where van Meerhof was appointed superintendent. The family briefly returned to the mainland in 1666 after the birth of Eva´s third child, in order to baptise the baby. Van Meerhof was murdered in Madagascar on 27 February 1668 on an expedition. After the death of her husband Pieter Van Meerhof came the appointment of a new governor, Zacharias Wagenaer. Unlike the governor before him, he held extremely negative views toward the Khoi peo
pl e, and because at this point the Dutch settlement was secure, he didn´t find a need for Eva as a translator anymore.
ellauri301.html on line 242: Krotoa´s descendants would later include the Peltzers, the Krugers, the Steenkamps and other Afrikaner families. After her death, Krotoa´s story would not be dee
pl y ex
pl ored for nearly two and a half centuries. Instead attention was mostly put on white European women who came to South Africa on missionary expeditions. It was not until after the 1920s that her story become a part of South African history. As late as 1983, under the name of Eva, she was still known in South Africa as a caution against miscegenation.
ellauri301.html on line 244: In her essay "Malintzin, Pocahontas, and Krotoa: Indigenous Women and Myth Models of the Atlantic World", University of Michigan professor Pamela Scully compared Krotoa to Malintzin and Pocahontas, two other women of the same time period that were born in different areas of the world (Malintzin in Mesoamerica, Pocahontas in colonial Virginia). Scully argues that all three of these women had very similar experiences in the colonialist system despite being born in different regions. She reflects on the stories of Malintzin, Pocahontas, and Krotoa and states that they are almost too familiar and resonate so comfortably with a kind of inevitability and truth that seems, on reflection, perhaps too neat. Therefore, she claims, Krotoa is one of the women that can be used to show the universality of the way that indigenous peo
pl e were treated in the colonial system worldwide.
ellauri301.html on line 248: Born in Johannesburg to an influential Afrikaner family, de Klerk studied at Potchefstroom University before pursuing a career in law. Joining the NP, to which he had family ties, he was elected to parliament and sat in the white-minority government of P. W. Botha, holding a succession of ministerial posts. As a minister, he supported and enforced apartheid, a system of racial segregation that privileged white South Africans. After Botha resigned in 1989, de Klerk re
pl aced him, first as leader of the NP and then as State President. Although observers expected him to continue Botha´s defence of apartheid, de Klerk decided to end the policy. He was aware that growing ethnic animosity and violence was leading South Africa into a racial civil war.
ellauri301.html on line 250: Amid this violence, the state security forces committed widespread human rights abuses and encouraged violence between the Xhosa and Zulu peo
pl e, although de Klerk later denied sanctioning such actions. He permitted anti-apartheid marches to take
pl ace, legalised a range of previously banned anti-apartheid political parties, and freed imprisoned anti-apartheid activists such as Nelson Mandela. He also dismantled South Africa´s nuclear weapons program.
ellauri301.html on line 257: De Klerk was a heavy smoker but gave up smoking towards the end of 2005. He also enjoyed a glass of whisky or wine while relaxing his muscles. He enjoyed
pl aying golf and big game hunting, as well as going for brisk walks.
ellauri301.html on line 270: Sangoma Oy, highly respected dealer among the Zulu peo
pl e of South Africa who diagnoses, prescribes, and often performs the operations to heal a person physically, mentally, emotionally, or spiritually. Sanoma Oy may address all of these realms in the healing process, which usually involves divination, verbal medicine, and specific customized visuals to cure morbid curiosity and restore upper middle class well-being.
ellauri301.html on line 286:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/60/Jammu1MH_uu.jpg/200px-Jammu1MH_uu.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri301.html on line 292: Terde spent three years in a Rooigrond prison for assaulting a petrol station attendant and for the attempted murder of a Black security guard around 1996. He was released in June 2004. On 3 April 2010, he was hacked and beaten to death on his Ventersdorp farm, allegedly by two of his em
pl oyees in a dispute over unpaid wages.
ellauri301.html on line 336:
Braaibrootjies, pap( traditional African stapl e), tomato & onion relish, chakalaka & much more.
ellauri301.html on line 350: Since then all South Africans have celebrated Heritage Day by remembering the cultural heritage of the many different cultures that make up their nation. Events are held across the country with some peo
pl e choosing to dress up in their traditional attire, including the boers and the british.
ellauri301.html on line 427: No truth to it. Doesn't exist. There's no "there" there. A com
pl ete fiction. SOURCE: Stutchkoff, Der Oytser fun der Yidisher Shprakh. The first phrase is in Hebrew and usually stands alone. It is followed by a tongue-in-cheek paraphrase in Yiddish. Refers to a commentary on the story in 2 Kings 2:23-24, in which Elisha's curse called two bears out of a forest to attack youths who had mocked him. According to Rashi, this was a double miracle because there existed in the area neither forest nor bears. Variation:
ellauri301.html on line 439: "Gå då hem och be en bön. Personligen kan jag inte längre knyta på mej ett par bönekapslar och tala till väggen. Ingen har en aning om vad de där 'pannbanden' var som Moses befallde judarna i öknen att knyta mellan ögonen. Dom var sannerligen inga pergamentbitar i träfodral sammanhållna av läderremmar. I vetenska
pl ig mening handlar det om pannben. Det där du kallar 'bönekapslar' är lika mycket bibliska 'pannband' du är guvernör i Ohio."
ellauri301.html on line 448: Leah står i tur med bröstcancer. Vilken tur. Sjukhuset är en
pl ågornas och dödens fabrik där allting som var personligt blottades och förnedrades.
ellauri301.html on line 453: If the value of tikkun olam really means leaving your imprint on the world in a quest to make it a better
pl ace for all of us, then Steve Jobs possessed that value a thousand-fold. Tikkun Olam: In Jewish teachings, any activity that improves the world, bringing it closer to the harmonious state for which it was created. Tikkun olam im
pl ies that while the world is innately good, its Creator purposely left room for us to improve upon His work.
ellauri301.html on line 461: Tredje Moseboken 19:29
pl us kontexti:
ellauri301.html on line 475: Men var det sant? Var Gud verkligen god mot alla? Hade han varit god mot de sex miljoner judarna i Europa? Var han god mot alla de kor och grisar och höns som folk slaktade i just detta ögonblick? Var han god mot de tiotals miljoner människor som släpade sig genom livet med cancer och dog en
pl ågsam död? Var han god mot de miljoner oskyldiga som förtvinade i Stalins slavläger och som bara döden kunde befria? Och även om man förutsatte att deras själar till slut nådde paradiset, varför skulle då vägen dit nödvändigtvis vara stenlagd med så mycket lidande? Kunde någon verkligen kalla en sådan Gud for god? Och kunde man fortsätta att tjäna honom dag ut och dag in utan att med säkerhet veta om han ville ha det så eller alls uppskattade det? Nej, själv kan jag inte göra det! Han fick stor lust att genast slita av sig bönesjalen och bönekapslarna. Han slutade läsa texten.
ellauri302.html on line 33:
KOST' JUMALA play:none">Hulabaloota
ellauri302.html on line 34:
pload/f_auto,fl_lossy/c_fill,g_faces:center,h_428,w_640/501564" width="100%" />
ellauri302.html on line 39: 'Gays, go home!' - Mitzpe Ramon yeshiva head rails against LGBTQ+ peo
pl e.
ellauri302.html on line 62: It is interesting to consider Ash's 'The God of Vengeance" in connection with a
pl ay like ''Mrs. Warren's Profession." To be sure, there is no technical resemblance between the two dramas; nor, despite an external similarity in backgrounds, is there any real identity of purpose. Shaw's
pl ay is essentially sociological, and is a drama of disillusionment. Ash's piece glows with poetic realism and recounts an individual tragedy not without symbolic power. Mikä molemmisssa on mukavaa on että niissä on paljon prostituutteja!
ellauri302.html on line 66: Mrs. Warren cherishes no delusions about her dubious profession, — If Yekel and his wife (in Ash's
pl ay) are not so enlightened as Mrs. Warren in their views upon the traffic off which they live, they are in their own crude way equally sincere in beholding in it a business quite as legitimate as any other. With the same inconsistency with which Hindel im
pl ores Heaven for aid in achieving her nefarious aims, after which she promises to be a model wife and mother (See Act Two), Mrs. Warren at the end of Shaw's
pl ay swears by Heaven that henceforth she will lead a life of evil fornication.
ellauri302.html on line 68: Regrettably, however, 'The God of Vengeance," despite conclusions too easily drawn, is not a sex
pl ay. When Ash wishes to deal with sex as sex he is not afraid to handle the subject with all the poetry and power at his command. Such a
pl ay as his "Jephthah's Daughter" treats the elemental urge of sex with daring, beauty and Dionysiac abandon. A lurid reader is referred to this other
pl ay. This one is bound to be a disappointment.
ellauri302.html on line 73: The Holy Scroll is clearly the chief character. The Holy Scroll, whose religious significance is fully ex
pl ained in the course of the
pl ay, is a parchment manuscript containing the first five books of the Bible, together known as the Torah, or Law. Despite that, Ash is no orthodox. He was 37 and lived happily in New York at the time. Tämän johdannon kirjoitti Iisakki Kultavuori, Roxbury Mass. mainizematta mitenkään näytelmän vahvaa lepakkotunnelmaa.
ellauri302.html on line 105:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/69/David-Kessler_Jennie-Goldstein_Malvina-Lobel.jpg/440px-David-Kessler_Jennie-Goldstein_Malvina-Lobel.jpg" />
ellauri302.html on line 112:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c8/Celia_Adler_PD_image.jpg" />
ellauri302.html on line 131: ''Who you are!" What! Have you stolen anything? You have a business. Everybody has his own business. You don't compel anybody, do you? You may deal in what you
pl ease, can't you, if you yourself do no wrong?... Just try to give them some money, and see whether they'll take it from you or not!
ellauri302.html on line 143: What is worst they are
pl anning to start a competing brothel! And demanding Hindel's back wages from Tevje. Suggest engaging Rifkele to the trade. WTF! Downstairs with you! Shloyme ja Hindel vittuilevat isännille, alkaa rökitys.
ellauri302.html on line 148: rapidly, making ingratiating gestures as he does so. He appears to be much at home, and evidently entertains a high opinion of himself. I beg your pardon, Scribe; I beg your pardon. (Quietly, to Yekel and Sarah.) You ought to act more decently. It's high time. Peo
pl e are coming and...
ellauri302.html on line 205: A fine business! It has to rain! (Suddenly noticing Rifkele, he ex
pl odes with rage.) What! You here! (Seizes her hy the collar and shakes her, clinching his teeth.) What are you doing here?
ellauri302.html on line 223: What a sweet odor the rain has!... (Shaking raindrops off her clothes.) Just like the ap
pl es at home drying, in the lofts. This is the first May rain.
ellauri302.html on line 229: At home, in my village, the first sorrel must be sprouting. Yes, at the first May rain they cook sorrel soup... And the goats must be grazing in the meadows... And the rafts must be floating on the stream... And Franek is getting the Gentile girls together, and dancing with them at the inn... And the women must surely be baking cheese-cakes for the Feast of Weeks.* (Silence.) Do you know what? I'm going to buy myself a new summer tippet and go home for the holidays... (Buns into her room, brings out a large summer hat and a long veil; she
pl aces the hat upon her wet hair and surveys herself in the looking-glass.) Just see! If I'd ever come home for the holidays rigged up in this style, and promenade down to the station... Goodness! They'd just burst with envy. Wouldn't they? If only I weren't afraid of my father! He'd kill me on the spot. He's on the hunt for me with a crowbar. Once he caught me dancing with Franek at the village tavern and he gave me such a rap over the arm with a rod (Showing her arm.) that I carry the mark to this very day. I come from a fine family. My father is a butcher. Talk about the fellows that were after me!... (In a low voice.) They tried to make a match between me and Nottke the meat-chopper. I've got his gold ring still. (Indicating a ring upon her finger.) He gave it to me at the Feast of Tabernacles.* Maybe he wasn't wild to marry me, — but I didn't care to.
ellauri302.html on line 231: Described in Leviticus 23, The Feast of Weeks is the second of the three “solemn feasts” that all Jewish males were required to travel to Jerusalem to attend (Exodus 23:14–17; 34:22–23; Deuteronomy 16:16). This important feast gets its name from the fact that it starts seven full weeks, or exactly 50 days, after the Feast of Firstfruits. Since it takes
pl ace exactly 50 days after the previous feast, this feast is also known as “Pentecost” (Acts 2:1), which means “fiftieth.”
ellauri302.html on line 233: Each of three “solemn feasts”—Passover, the Feast of Weeks, and the Feast of Tabernacles—required that all able-bodied Jewish males travel to Jerusalem to attend the feast and offer sacrifices. All three of these feasts required that “firstfruit” offerings be made at the tem
pl e as a way of expressing thanksgiving for God’s provision. The Feast of Firstfruits celebrated at the time of the Passover included the first fruits of the barley harvest. The Feast of Weeks was in celebration of the first fruits of the wheat harvest, and the Feast of Tabernacles involved offerings of the first fruits of the olive and grape harvests.
ellauri302.html on line 243: Basha: Here, at least, I'm a free person. I've got my chest of finery, and dress swell. Better clothes, upon my word, than the rich daughters of my village... (Fetching from her compartment a hrown dress.) When I go walking on Marshalkovski street in this dress they all stare at me... Fire and flame! Mm! If I could only put in an appearance in my home town dressed in this fashion, here 's how I 'd promenade to the station. (Struts across the room like a lady of fashion^ raising her skirt at the hack and assuming a cosmopolitan air.) They'd die of jealousy, I tell you... They'd be stricken with apo
pl exy on the spot. (Promenades about the room
pl aying the grand dame.)
ellauri302.html on line 245: Reizel, straightens the folds of Bashas dress in the back and adjusts her hat to a better angle. That's the way! Now raise your head a bit higher... Who needs to know that you were ever in a
pl ace of this sort? You'll tell them that you were with a big business house. A Count has fallen in love with you...
ellauri302.html on line 247: Hindel, from her room, where she is still busy with her chest of clothes. And what's the matter with a
pl ace of this sort, I'd like to know? Aren't we every bit as good as the girls in the business houses, eh? The whole world is like that nowadays; that's what the world demands. In these days even the daughters of the best families aren't any better. This is our way of earning a living. And believe me, when one of us gets married, she's more faithful to her husband than any of the others. We know what a man has.
ellauri302.html on line 249: Shut up, will you? Late at night they have to start telling stories about the dead. No dead peo
pl e can come here. Our boss has a Holy Scroll upstairs... (A sudden hush.) What's wrong about our trade, I'd like to know? (She leaves her little room and goes into the basement.) Wasn't our mistress in a house like this for fifteen years? Yet she married. And isn't she a respectable God-fearing woman?... Doesn 't she observe all the laws that a Jewish daughter must keep?... And isn't her Rifkele a pure child? And isn't our boss a respectable man? Isn't he generous? Doesn't he give the biggest donations to charity?... And he's had a Holy Scroll written...
ellauri302.html on line 266: Basha, runs over. Come. Let's s
pl ash each other... Let's sprinkle handfuls of raindrops over each other. Lets give the whole male audience a huge boner!
ellauri302.html on line 286: With God's help, if I can only get both of them, Rifkele and Manke, this very night... I 'll take them directly to Shloyme 's... And I 'll say to him, "Here you are... Here's your bread and butter. Now rent a
pl ace, marry me, and become as respectable a man as the Uncle. Well have a girl and it's back to square one.
ellauri302.html on line 288: Raises her hands toward the ceiling.) Father in Heaven, you are a Father to all orphans... Mother in your grave, pray for me... Let my troubles come to an end. Let me at last be settled in my own home!... (Pause.) If God is only good to me, I'll have a Holy Parchment written in His honor... And every Sabbath I'll give three pounds of candles to the House of Study. (A long pause. She is lost in the contem
pl ation of her future prospects,) Yes, he is a good God... a good God... Father in Heaven... Mother, pray in my behalf... don't be silent... pray for me... do your very best for me... (She returns to her compartment and begins hastily to pack her things.) I can be ready, anyway.
ellauri302.html on line 294: Are you cold, Rifkele darling? Nestle close to me... Ever so close... Warm yourself next to me. So. Come, let's sit down here on the lounge. (Leads Rifkele to a lounge; they sit down.) Just like this... Now rest your face snugly in my bosom. So. Just like that. And let your body touch mine... It's so cool... as if water were running between us. (Pause.) I uncovered your breasts and washed them with the rainwater that trickled down my arms. Your breasts are so white and soft. And the blood in them cools under the touch, just like white snow, — like frozen water... and their fragrance is like the grass on the meadows. And I let down your hair so... (Buns her fingers through RifkeWs hair.) And I held them like this in the rain and washed them. How sweet they smell... Like the rain itself... (She huries her face in Rifkele's hair.) Yes, I can smell the scent of the May rain in them... So light, so fine... And fresh... as the grass on the meadows... as the ap
pl e on the bough... So. Cool me, refresh me with your tresses. (She washes her face in Rifkele^s hair.) Cool me, — so. But wait... I'll comb you as if you were a bride... a nice part and two long, black braids. (Does so.) Do you want me to, Rifkele? Do you?
ellauri302.html on line 322: Manke No. We'll run away this very night, — with Hindel, to her house... She has a house with Shloyme, she told me. You'll see how nice everything will be... Young folks will be there a
pl enty, — army officers... and we'll be together, all by ourselves, all day long. We'll dress just like the officers and go horseback-riding. Come, Rifkele, — do you want to?
ellauri302.html on line 326: Manke No, no. He won't hear. He's sleeping so soundly... There, can't you hear him snoring?... (Runs over to Hindel's compartment and seizes Hindel by the arm.) Have you got a
pl ace? Come! Take us away at once!
ellauri302.html on line 328: Hindel, waking with a start. Yes, yes. To Shloyme 's, right away! (She throws a dress over Rifkele.) He'll find us a
pl ace quickly enough.
ellauri302.html on line 351: Yekel, rushes into the basement a burning candle in his hand. His hair is in disorder. Over his nightshirt he has thrown a coat. He shouts wildly.) Rifkele! Rifkele! Is Rifkele here? (No re
pl y. He tears the curtains of the compartments violently aside.) Rifkele! Where is she? (Waking Reizel and Basha.) Where is Rifkele! Rifkele! Where is she? Whatever happened to the scroll? Did they elope together?
ellauri302.html on line 361: Sarah (arises. To Yekel.) It makes no difference to me, — one
pl ace or another, your, mine or the bike basement. If you want me to leave, all right. I'll go. The devil won't take me long.. I'll earn my keep, all right, wherever I may be, the good old way. (Resumes her packing, silently. Pause.)
ellauri302.html on line 376: Sarah: So you want to go back to the basement? — Into the basement, then! Much I care! (Resumes her packing.) He wants to ruin us com
pl etely. What has come over the man? (For a moment she is absorbed in reflection.) If you're going to stand there like a lunatic, I'll get busy myself! (Takes off her diamond ear-rings.) I'll go over to Shloyme's and give him my diamond ear-rings. (From her bundle she draws out a golden chain.) And if he holds back, I'll add a hundred rouble note. (She searches YeheVs trousers pocket for his pockethook. He offers no resistance.) Within fifteen minutes (Throwing a shawl over her shoulders.) Rifkele will be here. (As she leaves.) Shloyme will do that for me. (Slams the door behind her.)
ellauri302.html on line 422: Fine! Then what's all this commotion about? The whole town will know all about it before long. Such things should be kept dark. They're not nice. If a prospective father-in-law ever got wind of the story, her dowry would have to be raised a cou
pl e of hundred roubles...
ellauri302.html on line 428: Fie! You're out of your head altogether. True, a misfortune has befallen you. May Heaven watch over aU of us. Well? What? Misfortunes happen to
pl enty of folks. The Lord sends aid and things turn out all right. The important point is to keep your mouth shut. Hear nothing. See nothing. Just wash your hands clean of it and forget it. (To Reizel.) Be careful what you say. Don't let it travel any further, God forbid. Do you hear? (Turns to Yekel, who is staring vacantly into space.) I had a talk with... (Looks around to see whether Reizel is still present. Seeing her, he stops. After a pause he begins anew, more softly, looking at Reizel as a hint for her to leave.) With er, er... (Casts a significant glance at Reizel, who at last understands, and leaves.) I had a talk with the groom's father. I spoke to him between the afternoon and evening prayers, at the synagogue. He's almost ready to talk business. Of course I gave him to understand that the bride doesn't boast a very high pedigree, but I guess another hundred roubles will fix that up, all right. Nowadays, pedigrees don't count as much as they used to. With God's help I'll surely be here this Sabbath, with the groom's father. We'll go down to the Dayon and have him examine the young man in his religious studies... But nobody must get wind of this tale. It might spoil everything. The father comes of a fine family and the son carries a smart head on his shoulders. There, there. Calm yourself. Trust in the Lord and everything will turn out for the best. With God's help I am going home to prepare for the morning prayer. And as soon as the girl returns, notify me. Remember, now. (About to go.)
ellauri302.html on line 442: Yekel yatkaa yäkätystä: I told you everything. So you advised me to have a Holy Scroll written. In there I
pl aced it, — in her room. I stood before it night after night, and used to say to it, **You are really a God. You know everything I do. You will punish me. Very well. Punish me. Punish my wife. We have both sinned. But my poor, innocent daughter. Guard her. Have pity upon her!'*
ellauri302.html on line 448: Reb Ali: Don't speak folly, I tell you. Calm yourself. Pray fervently for the Lord's pardon. Give up this business of yours. With God's help your daughter will yet marry just like aU Jewish women, and bring you
pl enty of happiness.
ellauri302.html on line 450: Yekel: Too late, Rebbi. Too late. If only she had died in her childhood, I should have nothing to com
pl ain about... Then I 'd know she was dead, — that I had buried an innocent creature... I would visit her grave and say to myself, Here
ellauri302.html on line 457: Reb Ali, jumps up and snatches the Parchment from YeheVs grasp. Do you realize whom you are talking to? (Looks at him sternly, then takes the Scroll hack to Rifkele's room.) Im
pl ore pardon of the Holy Scroll!
ellauri302.html on line 474: Reb Ali The truth. The truth. Heaven will help you... Everything will turn out for the best. I'm going to the young man's father directly. He's over at the synagogue and must surely be waiting for me. (Looks around.) Tell your wife to put the house in order in the meantime. And you, prepare the contract, and at once, so that he'll have no time to discover anything amiss and withdraw. Arrange the wedding date and have the bride go at once to her parents-in-law. No idle chatter, remember. Keep silent, so that nobody wiU learn anything about it. (Ready to go.) And cast all this nonsense out of your head. Trust in the Lord and rejoice in His comfort. (At the door.) Tell your wife to tidy up the
pl ace. (Leaves.)
ellauri302.html on line 476: Yekel, strides nervously to and fro. Let her only tell me the truth. The
pl ain truth. (A long silence.)
ellauri302.html on line 478: Sarah, on the threshold. Come in. Come in. Your father won't beat you. (Pause.) Go in, I tell you. (Pushes Rifkele into the room. Rifkele has a shawl over her head. She stands silent and motionless at the door, a shameless look in her eyes, biting her lips,) Well, what are you standing there for, my darling? Much
pl easure you've brought us... in return for our trouble in bringing you up. We'll square that with you later. (Interrupting herself.) Get into your room. Comb your hair. Put on a dress. We're expecting guests. (To Yekel.) I just met Reb Ali. He's going for the groom's father. (Looks about the room.) Goodness me! How the
pl ace looks! (She begins hastily to
pl ace things in order.)
ellauri302.html on line 490: Sarah, brings in Yekel's coat and funny hats and
pl aces them upon him. He offers no resistance. What a misfortune! What a misfortune! Who could have foreseen such a thing? (She straightens YekeVs coat, then puts the room in order. Runs into Rifkele's room. She is heard hiding something there, and soon returns.) I'll have a reckoning with you later. (Putting the finishing touches to the room.) Terrible days, these. Bring up children with so much care and anxiety, and... Ah! (Footsteps are heard outside. Sarah runs over to Yekel and pulls his sleeve.) They're here! For the love of God, Yekel, remember! Everything can be fixed yet. (Enter Reh Ali arid a stranger. Sarah hastily thrusts her hair under her wig and goes to the door to ivelcome the visitors.)
ellauri302.html on line 495: Good morning. Happy new year. Welcome. (Somewhat confused, she
pl aces chairs before the guests and motions them to be seated.)
ellauri302.html on line 501: Reb Ali, gesticulating. Let's get right down to business. (To the stranger, pointing to Tekel.) This gentleman wishes to unite families with you. He has an excellent daughter and wants as her husband a scholar well versed in Rabbinical lore. He'll support the cou
pl e for life.
ellauri302.html on line 507: Reb Ali, to the stranger. He's ready to settle upon her a dowry of five hundred roubles cash at the time of the engagement... And he'll support the cou
pl e for life. He will treat your son as his own child.
ellauri302.html on line 512: Naturally, naturally. This gentleman will guard him like the ap
pl e of his eye. He'll have the best of everything here. He'll be able to sit and study the Holy Law day and night, to his heart's content.
ellauri302.html on line 548: David Kessler toi näytelmän ensimmäisen kerran New York Cityyn Yhdysvaltoihin vuonna 1907. Yleisö tuli enimmäkseen Kessleriin, ja he buuttivat muuta näyttelijää. New Yorkin tuotanto sai aikaan suuren lehdistösodan paikallisten jiddish-lehtien välillä, jota johti ortodoksinen Tage
pl att ja jopa maallisempi Forverts. Ortodoksisissa papereissa viitattiin koston jumalaan"likaiseksi", "moraalittomaksi" ja "syvyttömäksi", kun taas radikaalit lehdet kuvailivat sitä "moraaliksi", "taiteelliseksi" ja "kauniiksi".
ellauri302.html on line 558:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/a3/Szalom_Asz.jpg" />
ellauri302.html on line 577:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/13/Moshe_Chaim_Luzzatto_%28ramhal%29_-_Wall_painting_in_Acre%2C_Israel.jpg/440px-Moshe_Chaim_Luzzatto_%28ramhal%29_-_Wall_painting_in_Acre%2C_Israel.jpg" />
ellauri302.html on line 668:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/Rabbi_Eliyahu_de_Vidas_tombstone.jpg/440px-Rabbi_Eliyahu_de_Vidas_tombstone.jpg" />
ellauri302.html on line 699: Zohar (heprea : זֹהַר , Zōhar, kirjaimellisesti "S
pl endor" tai "Radiance") on perustava teos juutalaisen mystisen ajattelun kirjallisuudessa, joka tunnetaan nimellä Kabbala. Se on ryhmä kirjoja, jotka sisältävät kommentteja Tooran mystisista puolista (Mooseksen viisi kirjaa) ja pyhien kirjoitusten tulkintoja sekä materiaalia juutalaisten meemeistä, pensasmystikoista, myyttisestä kosmogoniasta ja mystisestä psykologiasta. Zohar sisältää keskusteluja Jumalan luonteesta, joissa selvitetään maailmankaikkeuden alkuperä ja rakenne, sielujen luonne, lunastus, egoistin suhde pimeyteen ja "todellisen minän" suhde "Jumalan valoon".
ellauri302.html on line 701: Zohar (זהר) ("S
pl endor") – Kabbalan tärkein teksti, joka saavutti toisinaan jopa kanonisen aseman osana suullista Tooraa. Se on mystinen Tooran kommentti, joka on kirjoitettu keinotekoisella useiden aramealaisten murteiden sekoituksella, kuten Targum Onkeloksen babylonialainen targumilainen aramea, Babylonian talmudiaramea, ja juutalainen palestiinalainen aramea.
ellauri302.html on line 714: Hon gav efter för alla hans infall men begärde aldrig att han skulle återgälda henne med dyrbara gåvor. Hon var på sitt sätt ett perfekt varelse som med stor precision utförde de roller hon var skapad for. Under alla de år de levde tillsammans hade ingenting någonsin fungerat fel, vare sig i hemmet eller i hennes yrkesliv. Hon
pl anerade all minsta detalj. Varje gång Margolin undersökte henne blev han förvånad. Allt var precis som det skulle - pulsen, blodtrycket, blodvärdena, syne, hörseln, reflexerna. Hon hade en oförklarlig förmåga att alltid anpassa till hans humor. Hon läste hans tankar, anade vad han tänkte säga. Margolin fann henne enastående när det gällde sexuellt förspel, efterspel och alla de viskningar och smekningar som gör kärleksakten spännande. De kvinnor som handlade i hennes boutique anförtrodde henne en mängd detaljer och hon visste precis vad hon skulle återberätta för honom, och när och hur. Hon klädde sig smakfullt och anspråkslöst, hon målade inte naglarna, hon sminkade sig diskret, bar sällan smycken. Lise olisi perfekti silikoninukke juutalaiselle tuppikullille, paizi tuota pystynenää...
ellauri308.html on line 33:
JUUTALAISTA HUUMORIA play:none">Huumoria
ellauri308.html on line 39:
ploads/posts/2020-12/1607244763_47-p-golie-sovetskie-devushki-erotika-125.jpg" />
ellauri308.html on line 156: src="https://u
pl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/24/AinoKuusinen.jpg/496px-AinoKuusinen.jpg"
ellauri308.html on line 293:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/92/Terijokipakten.jpg/500px-Terijokipakten.jpg" />
ellauri308.html on line 308:
ploads/2019/08/picture-5700-e3c8307321c50562fc51a7948ab5a069.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 319:
ploads/2019/08/picture-91.png" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 342:
ploads/2022/11/Rauno-Rintakuva-2021_profiilikuvaksi-%E2%80%93-kopio.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 355:
ploads/2021/01/20160721_115844-1-768x1024.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 362:
ploads/2019/09/65391122_2802395089776766_2200695093046804480_n1.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 368:
ploads/2020/01/KarinenMV.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 374:
ploads/2019/08/picture-50940-1438541361.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 380:
ploads/2019/08/picture-52305-1442323150.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 385:
ploads/2021/05/Hytonen-Juha2-785x1024.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 408:
ploads/2019/08/picture-50940-1438541361.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 413:
ploads/2023/04/Eki_Facebook_Kuva-150x150-1.jpg" width="10%" />
ellauri308.html on line 417:
pload/f_jpg,c_fill,w_1920,h_1080,q_auto/v1679494470/13-1-63225061-1677077784381.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri308.html on line 418:
ploads/sites/2/2020/09/2020-9-22_Tuominen-Arvo.jpeg" height="200px" />
ellauri308.html on line 428:
ploads/2019/04/MG21F5xcANaQaxC6EmZ8yN6PKU9TbLyM1.jpg">
ellauri308.html on line 462:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/46/Gda%C5%84sk_ulica_Marynarki_Polskiej_15_%28Stefan_%C5%BBeromski%29.JPG" height="400px" />
ellauri308.html on line 469:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0a/J.Mien-Portret_Henryka_Sienkiewicza_w_stroju_safari.jpg/500px-J.Mien-Portret_Henryka_Sienkiewicza_w_stroju_safari.jpg" />
ellauri308.html on line 497:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/00/Elisabeth_Warling-Hans_Olof_Hildebrand.jpg/500px-Elisabeth_Warling-Hans_Olof_Hildebrand.jpg" />
ellauri308.html on line 545: Amerikkavastaisuus on ollut Venäjällä jo pitkään, aina bolshevikkien vallankumouksesta vuonna 1917. Suhteet jäivät vuoteen 1933 asti, jolloin Yhdysvaltain presidentti Franklin Roosevelt päätti solmia di
pl omaattisuhteet Neuvostoliiton kanssa. Yhdysvallat ja Neuvostoliitto olivat vastentahtoisesti liittolaisia toisessa maailmansodassa, mutta sodan päätyttyä Yhdysvallat vastusti Neuvostoliiton sotilaallista menestystä ja Itä-Euroopan herruutta. Kun jännitteet kasvoivat kylmäksi sodaksi, suhteet muuttuivat vihamielisiksi ja suuria sotasuunnitelmia tehtiin, mutta suoraa sotaa ei valitettavasti tapahtunut. Nyt asia on Krimillä korjaantumassa.
ellauri308.html on line 560:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f2/Vladimir_Posner_2013_04.jpg/800px-Vladimir_Posner_2013_04.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri308.html on line 563: Perintösäätiö mainitsee, että Amerikan vastainen retoriikka on tällä hetkellä vakiovaruste ominaisuus suurimmassa osassa venäläisiä joukkomedialähetyksiä ja mainitsee: "Kreml käyttää amerikkalaisvastaisuutta strategisena työkaluna pyrkiäkseen sisä- ja ulkopoliittisiin tavoitteisiin median kautta. Valtion hallitsema tai omistama Venäjän hallitus levittää tarkoituksella myrkyllistä USA:n vastaista propagandaa kotimaassa ja ulkomailla ja syyttää useista Venäjän ongelmista länttä, erityisesti Yhdysvaltoja. Tämän politiikan osittainen onnistuminen paljastaa useita vakavia epäonnistumisia Yhdysvaltain julkisessa di
pl omatiassa, joka on ollut laskussa kylmän sodan päättymisen jälkeen."
ellauri308.html on line 569: Hän arvostaa Naton laajentumista Neuvostoliiton hajoamisen jälkeen, kylmän sodan jälkeistä strategiaa ja sitä seuranneen huomion puutetta erityisiin Venäjän di
pl omaattisiin avauksiin Vladimir Putinin puolelta.
ellauri308.html on line 713:
ploads/2015/05/slanina-jaja.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri308.html on line 732:
Armas Äikiä (14. maaliskuuta 1904 Pyhäjärvi V
pl – 20. marraskuuta 1965 Helsinki) oli lahjaton suomalainen runoilija, kirjailija, kääntäjä, toimittaja ja poliitikko. Äikiä kuului Suomen Kommunistisen Puolueen (SKP) johtoon 1930-luvun lopusta alkaen, asui vuosia Neuvostoliitossa ja oli talvisodan aikana perustetun Terijoen hallituksen maatalousministeri. Hän käytti myös salanimiä Viljo Veijo, Ami Aarto ja Liukas Luikku. Sekä Äikiän poliittisten mielipiteiden että kulttuuri- ja taidekäsitysten on luonnehdittu edustaneen dogmaattista neuvosto-marxismia.
ellauri308.html on line 775:
VIDEO
ellauri308.html on line 778:
ploads/c/7/f/c7f2f03dfb4dd1113cf23c019556f173.jpeg" height="200px" />
ellauri308.html on line 779:
pload/iblock/ff4/ff42d1a5b7336c986940a4d9997aaa10.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri308.html on line 792:
ploads/2023/01/7xiuwtsqq5y090152.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri309.html on line 33:
Far, Far Away play:none">Kapitalistinen manifesti
ellauri309.html on line 50:
ploads/2017/03/The-Little-Mermaid-Under-the-Sea-Song.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri309.html on line 89:
Third part of the Laura Templ eton trilogy. Third time is a charm.
ellauri309.html on line 134: kutsui
pl agiointia mielenraiskaukseksi ja haastoi Daileyn oikeuteen. Dailey
ellauri309.html on line 153: Bransonissa 14. joulukuuta 2013 sydänleikkauksen kom
pl ikaatioihin.
ellauri309.html on line 199: yrityksestä. On myönnettävä, että
pl agioinnin suuntaa on
ellauri309.html on line 204:
ploads/2018/11/Nora-Roberts-Tomi-Adeyemi-768x614.jpeg" width="100%" />
ellauri309.html on line 225: Facebookissa, koska Far, far away kirjojeni upea Laura Tem
pl eton johtaa
ellauri309.html on line 231: erittäin varovainen sen käytössä – ja Laura Tem
pl eton on vieläkin varovaisempi.
ellauri309.html on line 258: kaksisataa kirjaa. Takki tyhjänä. Minua syytettiin
pl agioinnista – otsikon
ellauri309.html on line 276: first
pl ace? Could you have, perhaps, checked the timeline? If your book
ellauri309.html on line 280: ‘stolen’? To be accused of
pl agiarism by some faceless reader on the
ellauri309.html on line 282:
pl agiarized, and will always have an open wound from the blow. To me,
ellauri309.html on line 283:
pl agiarism is the most terrible sin a writer can commit. I have worked my
ellauri309.html on line 288: that’s the problem. Those making them don’t know me, they sim
pl y lash out
ellauri309.html on line 300: that peo
pl e who don’t know me would feel free to say vicious things about
ellauri309.html on line 310: I sim
pl y want to set the record straight. I’m Nora
ellauri309.html on line 329:
pling.com/wp-content/u
pl oads/2023/04/IMG_3742-scaled-e1684707127857-1021x1024.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri309.html on line 363:
ploads/2017/09/mykkanen_71a0809_verkkoavaus-1-1200x800.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri309.html on line 500:
VIDEO
ellauri309.html on line 509: Billy Graham varttui maitotilallisen poikana Pohjois-Carolinan maaseudulla. He started to read books from an early age and loved to read novels for boys, especially Tarzan. Like Tarzan, he would hang on the trees and gave the popular Tarzan yell. According to his father, that yelling led him to become a minister. Vuonna 1934 Graham osallistui evankelista Mordecai Hamin kokoukseen ja teki henkilökohtaisen uskonratkaisun. Ham had a reputation for racism and anti-Semitism. He believed and preached on various topics based on classical anti-Semitic canards such as believing Jews had special access to political power and influence and that they represent a subversive social force. The targets for his preaching were often "nebulous rings of Jewish, Catholic or Black conspirators
pl otting to destroy white protestant America."
ellauri309.html on line 727:
ploads/2013/10/preachers-of-LA-header.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri309.html on line 767: Im Smoking sah ihr Bruder Josh wirklich phantastisch aus! Altmodisch und romantisch. Die schwungvolle Musik lockte Tänzer zum Paaren. Auch Nicht -Alkoholisches wurde serviert. Lauras Verpflichtung als eine Tem
pl eton war es, mit alten Ziegen zu tanzen und
pl audern. Sie duftete wie eine Frau. Ein Teil ihres Vaters (guess which) hoffte das sie noch schön brav auf Knien vor ihm wäre. Alle Lauras Freunde werden da sein, wenn dasselbe mit diesem Ridgeway nicht klappt.
ellauri309.html on line 772: Zwölf Jahre später: sie ist 30 und geschieden. Sie hat ihr Tem
pl etonvermögen verloren und hält 2 Teilzeitjobs. Die peinliche Tatsache ist dass sie nur mit einem Mann je gebumst hat. Sonst ist alles schon in Ordnung. Die Teilzeitjobs: nicht als Putzfrau wie Ann Sullivan, sondern Hotell-Leiterin und Boutique-Entrepreneurin. Ein harter Tag am Chequeschreiben und Tagungen erwartet. Suomessa on Lama-yhtyeen 80-luvun vasemmistopunkkareista tullut persuäijiä. Niin käy kun ei olla enää pahnan pohjimmaisina vaan lähinnä seuraavassa kerroxessa pohjalla.
ellauri309.html on line 774: Aber was! Ein Überraschungsfest! Margo hat Josh gepflückt, sogar die anorektishe Kate hat jemanden gekriegt mit dem romantischen Namen Byron de Witt. Sogar leitender Direktor von Tem
pl eton Kalifornien, no less.
ellauri309.html on line 783: Tem
pl etonien nykyaikaisen kuninkaanlinnan tallirakennuxessa palkizi desperadon näköistä, notmiitä tappamalla vaurastunutta arpista entistä palkkasoturia mahtava maisema! Was für ein Einblick! Er wurde mit einem hübschen weiblichen Hinterteil in engen Jeans belohnt. Seine eigenen schwarzen desperado-Jeans wurden
pl ötzlich all zu eng. Pfiuu! pfiuu! pfiuu! Dojongg-jongg! Noora on suunnilleen Seijan kokoinen. Hiän jopa tiesi miten päin pidellään Klobürsteä. Mikki nuuhki kyrpä kovana Laurasta lähtevää hienoista tuoxua. Die dem männlichen Geschmack entsprach. Ich habe Kinder gern. Lauran tytöt ovat heppahöperöitä. Mixi vitussa on ammeen pesu noloa? Kummallista porukkaa. Eine moderne Version von Heathcliff. Naisia kiihottavat pelottavat isot eläimet jotka ovat niille silti kilttejä ja nöyriä, niinkuin orihevoset tai Bellen hirviö.
ellauri309.html on line 787:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/90/Tennessee_Walking_Horse2.jpg/800px-Tennessee_Walking_Horse2.jpg" />
ellauri309.html on line 881: Sim
pl eton, ja jossei Laura huoli, ottaa Mikki pikku Lolitan. Sie kletterte in
ellauri309.html on line 910: natustelee Hotel Tem
pl etonissa toimeliaan Lauran poskea. Gott, ich liebe meinen
ellauri309.html on line 927: märkäimurina tyhjiin tuntui riemuvoitolta. Anständige Laura Tem
pl eton ist beim Sex
ellauri309.html on line 948: Nooran Ziegelsteinista, enää 150 pumppausta jäljellä. Mr Tem
pl eton, 55, sieht
ellauri309.html on line 1001:
ploads/sites/2/2023/07/NYPICHPDPICT000014802144.jpg?resize=768,974&quality=75&strip=all" />
ellauri309.html on line 1019:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/57/BabyPoster2.jpg/700px-BabyPoster2.jpg" />
ellauri309.html on line 1051:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/95/Mel_Gibson_Cannes_2016_2.jpg/440px-Mel_Gibson_Cannes_2016_2.jpg" />
ellauri309.html on line 1053: Hänet tunnetaan parhaiten toimintasankarirooleistaan, erityisesti hänen läpimurtoroolistaan Max Rockatanskyna post-apokalyptisen toimintasarjan Mad Max kolmessa ensimmäisessä elokuvassa ja Martin Riggsina kaveripoliisi toimintakomediasarjassa Tappava ase. Vuonna 1995 Gibson tuotti, ohjasi ja näytteli Braveheartissa, historiallisessa eeposessa. Myöhemmin hän ohjasi ja tuotti The Passion of the Christ -kirjan, raamatullisen draaman, joka oli sekä taloudellisesti menestynyt että erittäin kiistanalainen. Espanjalaisessa El País -sanomalehden haastattelussa hän esitti Jeesuxena halventavia kommentteja homoseksuaaleista. Vuonna 1999, kun häneltä kysyttiin kommenteista El Paísiin, Gibson sanoi: "Minun ei olisi pitänyt sanoa sitä, mutta kutittelin hieman vodkaa tuon haastattelun aikana, ja lainaus palasi kuin Riitta Purra puremaan minua perseeseen." Vanity Fair -lehden 2011 artikkelin mukaan Gibson kertoi ensin pidättäjälle: "Elämäni on ohi. Olen perseestä. Robyn jättää minut." Gibsonilla oli avoin alkoholisäiliö autossa. Gibson sanoi pidättävälle upseerille: "Vitun juutalaiset... juutalaiset ovat vastuussa kaikista maailman sodista
pl us Jeesuxen salamurhasta. Oletko juutalainen?" Heinäkuussa 2010 Gibson oli nauhoitettu puhelun aikana Grigorjevan kanssa, jossa hän ehdotti, että jos "neekerilauma raiskaa hiänet", hän olisi todennäköisesti syyllinen. Häntä estettiin tulemasta Grigorjevan tai heidän tyttärensä lähelle perheväkivaltaan liittyvän lähestymiskiellon vuoksi Aika paljon ehti Mel laittaa kenkää suuhun uran aikana. Se on Pezkua vuoden nuorempi. Hän sanoi, että kun hän juo, hän voi olla ilkeä humalassa ja "jutut tulevat ulos vääristyneellä tavalla..." Mikä oli Mel Gibsonin ympärillä oleva kiista, kun hän aloitti näyttelemisen? Kuinka suuri vaikutus sillä oli hänen uraansa tuolloin? Mel Gibsoniin liittyvät kohut ulottuvat aina vuoteen 1991 saakka. Häneltä kysyttiin haastattelussa, mitä mieltä hän on homoseksuaaleista. Hän vastasi: "He ottavat sen perseeseen," ja kun häntä pyydettiin tarkentamaan, hän osoitti takapuoltaan ja sanoi: "tämä on tarkoitettu vain paskantamiseen." Kyllä, hän todella sanoi niin. Kuinka väärässä hän olikaan.
ellauri309.html on line 1059: Mikki on epärealistinen yhdistelmä rauhia Draufgängeriä ja sanftia, freundlichia Mannia. Kaikkea ei voi saada, you can't have both, sanoisi Kingsley Amisin isäpappa. Sellaisia on vain kirjoissa. Onse epistä ettei voi saada sellaista, eikä izekään olla joku Laura Tem
pl eton. Vaan vain joku sim
pl eton joka ostaa Nooran kirjoja ja vetää käteen milloin peiton alla milloin vessassa.
ellauri309.html on line 1063: Mikki oli unohtanut mainita Harvard Tem
pl etonille
lempivänsä sen pikkusiskoa. Sehän muuttaa heti koko asian! Komm zurück ins Haus und lass Mrs. Williamson dich verarschen. Kenties Serafinan säälittävät sälät saavat jonkun muun unelmoimaan ja ostamaan tarpeetonta sälää kaverusten säläpuodista.
ellauri309.html on line 1069:
Schickse (Jiddisch: שיקסע schikse f, שיקסעס schikses
pl von Hebräisch שֶקֶץ šeqeṣ,
ellauri309.html on line 1077: Ms. Ridgewayta (os. Tem
pl eton) ei paljon paina että Mikki tappoi rahasta, kuha se ei tehnyt sitä jonkin aatteen puolesta. Ehrgeiz, Anstand und Mut, se on pääasia, ei se että on vanhaa rahaa, vaan että on valmis hankkimaan uusia kultadubloneita kaikilla eteen sattuvilla keinoilla. Du hast mir so viele neue Dinge gezeigt, womit man Kinder zeugen kann (
pl us einige, womit ganz sicher nicht). Schluss jetzt mit dem Quatsch, und das war die höchste Zeit.
ellauri310.html on line 25: No Picnic
play:none">Terdellä
ellauri310.html on line 26:
ploads/2011/11/page4.jpg" width="49%" />
ellauri310.html on line 27:
ploads/2011/11/page6.jpg" width="49%" />
ellauri310.html on line 53: Aake Kallialan näköinen poliisi on Tel Avivissa Dan, Atlas on Lior Ashkenazi, Ecemin oloinen pulska tyttö on Tel Avivissa poika. In forensic science, Locard's exchange princi
pl e holds that the perpetrator of a crime will bring something into the crime scene and leave with something from it, and that both can be used as forensic evidence. Sullon mun luonne. Mitäs läxit! Löpö on loppu. Lainaa naapurilta. Hyvä ajatus. Opettele lukemaan, se oli lämminvesivaraaja! Lährettihin kosimahan! Nunnuka nunnuka lailailaa! Apuuva!
ellauri310.html on line 92: Suosikkielementikseen terassilla Henna nimeää muhkean sohvan, jolla on mukava rentoutua. Sohvaa ympäröimään Henna on ripustanut vaijerin avulla vaaleat verhot, jotka luovat ulkotiloihin pehmeyttä ja ripauksen ylellisen lomaresortin tuntua. Hennan appiukon ize suunnittelemassa pergolassa on katto
pl exilasia. Pergolan valokate mahdollistaa ulkona oleskelun epävakaallakin säällä.
ellauri310.html on line 222:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/43/In_memorium--our_civil_service_as_it_was.JPG/600px-In_memorium--our_civil_service_as_it_was.JPG"
ellauri310.html on line 224:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/27/Charles_J_Guiteau.jpg"
ellauri310.html on line 254: Keho Meidän
pl aneettamme Avaruus Villieläimiä Uutiskirje INNOVAATIO Innovaatiota
ellauri310.html on line 462: Marylandini! Kosta isänmaallinen veri, joka tä
pl i Baltimoren kaduilla, ja ole
ellauri310.html on line 507: | Official Trailer" frameborder="0" allow="accelerometer; auto
pl ay;
ellauri310.html on line 539: (Казачок) by Cilicia dancers" frameborder="0" allow="accelerometer; auto
pl ay;
ellauri310.html on line 605: Richard Volney Chase (1914-1962) was a literary critic and a Professor of English at Columbia University. He is known for his work The American Novel and Its Tradition. Way famouser is Richard Trenton Chase (May 23, 1950 – December 26, 1980) an American serial killer, cannibal, and necrophile who killed six peo
pl e in the span of a month in 1977 and 1978 in Sacramento, California. He was nicknamed The Vampire of Sacramento because he drank his victims' blood and cannibalized their remains.
ellauri310.html on line 607: On one occasion, he was caught and chased off by a cou
pl e returning home as he pilfered their belongings; he had also urinated and defecated on their infant child's bed and clothing.
ellauri310.html on line 609: On January 23, 1978, Chase broke into a house and shot Teresa Wallin (three months pregnant at the time) three times. He then had sexual intercourse with her corpse while stabbing her with a butcher's knife. He then removed multi
pl e organs, cut off one of her nip
pl es and drank her blood. He stuffed dog feces from Wallin's yard down her throat before leaving.
ellauri310.html on line 662: In the United States and Canada, any casual sleeveless shirt can be called tank top or tank shirt, with several specific varieties. It is named after tank suits, one-piece bathing suits of the 1920s worn in tanks or swimming pools. The tank top designed for a tight fit and often made of ribbed cotton is also colloquially called an A-shirt, or, more offensively, wifebeater, beater, guinea tee or dago tee (guinea and dago being American ethnic slurs for peo
pl e of Italian ethnicity). Boob tube on briteissä hihaton toppi ja jenkeissä hölmöpönttö eli TV.
ellauri310.html on line 664:
VIDEO
ellauri310.html on line 673: In asymmetric warfare, threats such as improvised ex
pl osive devices and mines have proven effective against MBTs. Asymmetric warfare (or asymmetric engagement) is a type of war between belligerents whose relative military power, strategy, or tactics differ significantly. This type of warfare often, but not necessarily, involves insurgents or resistance movement militias who may have the status of unlawful combatants against a standing army. In response, nations that face asymmetric warfare, such as Israel, are reducing the size of their tank fleet and procuring more advanced models. Conversely, some insurgent groups like Hezbollah themselves operate main battle tanks, such as the T-72.
ellauri310.html on line 756:
Technology is reducing the weight and size of the modern MBT. A British military document from 2001 indicated that the British Army would not procure a repl acement for the Challenger 2 because of a lack of conventional warfare threats in the foreseeable future. The obsolescence of the tank has been asserted, but the history of the late 20th and early 21st century suggested that MBTs were still necessary.
ellauri310.html on line 761: A heavy cigar smoker, Abrams died at age 59, eleven days before his 60th birthday at Walter Reed Army Medical Center in Washington, D.C., from compl ications of surgery to remove a cancerous lung. He is buried with his wife Julia in Arlington National Cemetery.
ellauri310.html on line 763: The U.S. Army is evaluating a repl acement for the M1 Abrams as part of the Next Generation Combat Vehicle (NGCV) program, notionally known as the Decisive Lethality Platform (DLP).
ellauri310.html on line 764: ploads/sites/3/2022/10/Abrams-X-768x432.jpg" />
ellauri310.html on line 823: src="https://www.aei.org/wp-content/upl oads/2022/04/russian_idiocy_genocide_putin_lunatic.png?x91208"
ellauri310.html on line 952: Georgesta ei ole kovin hyviä lisänimiä. Jocko, Jock. Monkin Huckleberry Finn on Cherokee nimeltä Nebraska, jonka isä on poliisi ja on ampunut kymmenittäin notmiitä. NRA kalpenee Jockon rinnalla. Taidan jo arvata mixi Tomia ei enää lueta, liikaa n-sanoja. Pääasia on ampua toinen fella ennen kuin se ampuu sut. Joskus isäkin on ollut pidätettynä ammuttuaan jonkun lakukepin mutta se kyllä aina järjestyy. And why? Because this is America, and this is a free country. It is the only country where a poor man has a chance! Jos joku n-sana on sun tiellä niin ammut sen. Voit joutua tuomiolle mutta valkoinen valamiehistö vapauttaa sut, eikä siitä sen enempää. Nebraska on hyvä kaveri, Hagrid, meidän puolella, mutta Sid Purtle on luihulainen Drago Malfoy, white trash kertakäyttögrilli. Day of the grill: The end of days for the peopl e of The United States of America,
ellauri311.html on line 25:
Tantrista play:none">Terdellä
ellauri311.html on line 51: Men
pl ay a part also, though minuscule. They too
ellauri311.html on line 79: Honor your sexuality, get dee
pl y connected to the wants, needs, and desires of your Yoni and fill yourself up with, say, a deodorant bottle cap instead of looking for a man to do that for you.
ellauri311.html on line 209: musiikki kerää juhlakansaa päälavan eteen. Red tem
pl e teltassa on käynnissä
ellauri311.html on line 242: Tu
pl a tai kuitti -ohjelman emäntänä. Salon viimeisin ohjelma on Nelosen
ellauri311.html on line 396:
Claus: Plenty peo
pl e do not agree that Scandinavia is an exam
pl e to follow in regards to culture and politics, including a sizeable minority
ellauri311.html on line 399:
Camilla: And those peo
pl e, not rarely far-right on the political scale, are more than welcome to piss off.
ellauri311.html on line 466: sodanjälkeisestä asemasta jatkuu di
pl omaattisissa piireissä.
Päivää
ellauri311.html on line 574: words "layd him on the green" as "Lady Mondegreen". Pinker gives the exampl e of a
ellauri311.html on line 577: phenomenon may, in some cases, be triggered by peopl e hearing "what they want to
ellauri311.html on line 581: exampl e is "Gladly, the cross-eyed bear" (from the line in the hymn "Keep Thou My
ellauri311.html on line 650: Russians have been compl etely unable to establish air superiority.
ellauri311.html on line 667: marital arts compl ete idiot and yet men and boys are getting killed because
ellauri311.html on line 677: more data than Excel? Who are the peopl e who cross the threshold of
ellauri311.html on line 709: att skicka F16-pl an till Ukraina.
ellauri311.html on line 732: "Tämä on läpimurto" - Reuters ilakoi. General Dynamics F-16 Fighting Falcon on yhdysvaltalainen yksimoottorinen yliääninen monitoimihävittäjä, jonka General Dynamics on alun perin kehittänyt Yhdysvaltain ilmavoimille (USAF). Se suunniteltiin päivähävittäjäksi, ja siitä kehittyi menestyvä jokasään monitoimilentokone. Yli 4 600 lentokonetta on rakennettu sen jälkeen, kun tuotanto hyväksyttiin vuonna 1976. 50v vanhoja prutkuja. Yhtä vanhoja kuin Alapuron Mikko, yhtä nopeita kuin Alapuron Risto. Vaikka Yhdysvaltain ilmavoimat eivät enää osta niitä, parannettuja versioita rakennetaan vientiasiakkaille eli värivammaisille hölmöille, alikehittyneiden maiden miespuolisille kansalaisille. Fighting Falconin tärkeimmät ominaisuudet ovat kehyksetön kupl akatos hyvän näkyvyyden takaamiseksi, sivulle asennettu ohjaussauva, joka helpottaa ohjausta ohjauksen aikana, 30 astetta pystysuoraan kallistettu heittoistuin vähentää g-voimien vaikutusta ohjaajaan ja rento staattinen vakaus / fly-by-wire- lennonohjausjärjestelmä, joka auttaa tekemään siitä ketterän lentokoneen. F-16:ssa on sisäinen M61 Vulcan -tykki ja 11 kovapistettä. F-16 on myös hankittu palvelemaan 25 muun maan ilmavoimissa. Vuodesta 2015 lähtien se oli maailman eniten asepalveluksessa oleva kiinteäsiipinen lentokone. Israelin ilmavoimien F-16-koneiden ansioksi laskettiin 44 ilmasta ilmaan -murhaa Libanonin konfliktin aikana. Yhdysvaltain ilmavoimat (USAF), sen neljä Nato-kumppania, ja Pakistanin ilmavoimat (PAF), joka on suuri Naton ulkopuolinen Yhdysvaltain liittolainen, ovat General Dynamics F-16 Fighting Falconin pääoperaattoreita. Neljä eurooppalaista kumppania, jotka tunnetaan yhteisnimellä European Participating Governments (EPG), ovat Belgia, Tanska, Alankomaat ja Norja; niiden ilmavoimista käytetään myös nimitystä European Participating Air Forces (E-PAF). Jatkotilauksia ei ole tehty lukuun ottamatta yhtä tilausta vuonna 1989 kahdelle F-16B- 15 OCU-lentokoneita korvaamaan kaatuneita lentokoneita. Kaikki lentokoneet ovat saaneet Mid-Life-Update (MLU) -päivityksen ja uuden coolin kypärään kiinnitetyn tähtäysjärjestelmän. Äveriäs Norja ilmoitti 6. tammikuuta 2022, että kaikki sen F-16:t on poistettu käytöstä, kun ne on korvattu Lockheed Martin F-35 Lightning II:lla.
ellauri311.html on line 777: F1-loppet i Singapore kan vara det tuffaste under hela säsongen. Det är hett, det är fuktigt och tidsskillnaden är en faktor som måste tas i beaktande. 17000 kroppar has sjunkit i Medelhavet sedan 2014 på flykt norrut från den heta svarta kontinenten. Och då är det en stor fördel att få ett hotellrum som verkligen går att kyla. Valtteri Bottas har det lätt för han är ju van på bastu. Förarna bär hela dagen en kylväst, en våt handduk runt halsen oh en kall dryck i handen. Efter varje pass tar alla förare ett isbad. Det kallas också physicool, kylterapi. - Det bästa med kappl opp i hettan är att man tappar vikt, något som folk väl känner till på den svarta kontinenten med. Och i medelhavets djup är det ännu coolare att tillbringa evigheten.
ellauri313.html on line 27:
Tanssivat karhut play:none">Aika heikkoa
ellauri313.html on line 77: – Keskittymiskyvyn katoaminen on hirveän tyypillinen ja aika latteakin puheenaihe. Ihmisethän tekevät koko ajan todella kom
pl eksisia asioita ja ratkovat vaikeita ongelmia. Asia on paljon moniulotteisempi kuin miten siitä puhutaan.
ellauri313.html on line 122: Frank Martela varttui di
pl omi-insinöörien keskellä ihmisten maailman tutkijaksi
ellauri313.html on line 148: needs to have integrated periods of refraction, reflection, and
pl ay in
ellauri313.html on line 150: “Working hard” as such is re
pl aced by “working efficiently."
ellauri313.html on line 167: Tällänen "han/de jagar mig, jag sitter fast" on naistrillereille ominainen kauhukuva. Sä hoppade Aida
pl ums i den kalla Östersjön. Adjö Aida, invandrare.
ellauri313.html on line 173: That being said, at 500 pages, the book takes on a lot and doesn't adequately address it all. There's the nominal
pl ot, which concerns the Yugoslav mafia in Sweden; but there's also a new relationship for Annika, which is com
pl icated; the politics of the newspaper she works for; fundamental questions about the role of the welfare state; and questions about the role of a newspaper vis a vis law enforcement. This all kind of dropped off toward the end of the book, and I didn't find the conclusion to be particularly satisfying. I felt impatient with Annika's (main character), histrionics and irrationality.
ellauri313.html on line 180: The novel at its beginning from my point of view was promising for a good job, but then I found only unnecessary prolongation, weak
pl ot, and an attempt to mix crime with politics in a way that was unsuccessful for me (jag är en saudi sandneger som skriver på arabiska).
ellauri313.html on line 186: Samaa iänikuista kiireklischeetä, nyt lehden toimituxessa. Exnää hölmöt huomaa miten työväenliikkeen voitot on peruutettu? Mixe on muka niistä hienoa? Annika has obvious similarities to the author, with Liza Marklund herself pictured on the book covers. She was beaten so badly by her first husband that she was sim
pl y forced to kill him in self-defense. Journalisten Annika Bengtzon, som kommer från Hälleforsnäs i Södermanland men nu bor på Kungsholmen i Stockholm, är en typisk kvinna mitt i karriären, som jonglerar man och barn samtidigt med känslorna inför de tuffa kollegorna på Kvällspressen. Hon är lik ett pansarfordon. Oliko Thomas Samuelsson se uusi päätoimittaja biznizmaailmasta jonka talousliberalismi sai nuoren Annikan knickerit kostumaan? Eikun se oli Anders Schyman.
ellauri313.html on line 273: "pelastajakom
pl eksista", jonka hän näki amer. miehissä, jotka yrittivät "auttaa"
ellauri313.html on line 429: Herlinin roska
pl ärä ulajaa taas aukeamakaupalla isoin värikuvin jätesäkeissä kyhjöttäneistä Al Holin
ellauri313.html on line 471: Strategies that emphasize the possibility of escalation or eruption are associated with the term "brinkmanship." (We will sometimes refer to the game of "chicken" when the brinkmanship is overtly two-sided.) "Chicken" is
pl ayed by two drivers on a road with a white line down the middle. Both cars straddle the white line and drive toward each other at top speed. The first driver to lose his nerve and swerve into his own lane is "chicken"—an object of contempt and scorn—and he loses the game. The game is
pl ayed among teenagers for prestige, for girls, for leadership of a gang, and for safety (i.e., to prevent other challenges and confrontations).
ellauri313.html on line 478:
Poliittiset, taloudelliset ja dipl omaattiset eleet
ellauri313.html on line 486: Dipl omaattisten suhteiden provosoiva katkaisu
ellauri313.html on line 538: Kahnin näkemyksen mukaan kapitalismilla ja teknologialla oli lähes rajattomat edistysmahdollisuudet, ja avaruuden kolonisaatio oli lähitulevaisuudessa, ei kaukaisessa. Hän esitteli optimistisen skenaarion vuoden 2176 talousolosuhteista. Hän oli suursyömäri. Viimeisenä vuonnaan 1983 Kahn kirjoitti hyväksyvästi Ronald Reaganin poliittisesta agendasta The Coming Boom: Economic, Political and Social -kirjassa ja pilkkasi suoraan Jonathan Schellin väitteitä ydinsodan pitkäaikaisista vaikutuksista. Saman vuoden heinäkuun 7. päivänä hän kuoli apopl exiaan 61-vuotiaana. Vizi mikä perse! Ja tää on Mika Aaltolan guru sitten. Voi perkele.
ellauri313.html on line 551: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/88/Mendelssohn%2C_Lessing%2C_Lavater.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri313.html on line 554: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c9/Fromet_Mendelssohn_geb._Gugenheim.jpg" />
ellauri313.html on line 604: ploads/Singer-040822-Original-art-for-Israel-cover.jpg" />
ellauri313.html on line 632: How pure, how dear their dwelling-pl ace. puhtaita, rakkaita olosijojaan.
ellauri313.html on line 642: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/4b/Anne_Wilmot-Horton_%28n%C3%A9e_Horton%29_by_Walker_and_Boutall_c1890s_%28cropped%29.png" />
ellauri315.html on line 26: Simpl e Reasoning play:none">Simppeliä
ellauri315.html on line 27: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/b/b2/Untitled_Goose_Game_Cover_art.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri315.html on line 29: Simpl e Reasoning rulaa Untitled Goose-pelissä, jossa pikku Charlotte on aivan lyömätön.
ellauri315.html on line 65: Petteri Urpo: Ukrainan taistelu on taistelua oikeiston ja pl utokratian puolesta
ellauri315.html on line 97: VIDEO
ellauri315.html on line 135: Venäläisen sanomalehden nimi on Pravda. Se merkitsee suomeksi »totuus». Ja heillä on useita »totuuksia»: Leningradskaja Pravda, Komsomolskaja Pravda jne. Ei, Totuus on yksi. Se on sitä, että elämämme on joka hetki kuin avoin kirja Jumalan ja ihmisten edessä. On ajateltu, että ei esimerkiksi dipl omaatti eikä kauppias voi olla totuudellinen. Tämä on väärinkäsitys. Voi olla myös kristitty dipl omaatti ja kristitty kauppias. Jos joku sotisi nykyaikaisessa sodassa pelkin nyrkein, se olisi aivan naurettavaa! Kauppa ei ole pakkoa. Meidän asia on tarjota, ostajan hylätä. eR-eF-eS-eF-eR, russkij sakhar funt sto rublej.
ellauri315.html on line 220: ploads/2015/02/Kivatiet%C3%A4%C3%A4-meemi-info.jpg" />
ellauri315.html on line 227: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e0/Battle_of_Kursk_%28map%29.jpg/600px-Battle_of_Kursk_%28map%29.jpg" />
ellauri315.html on line 252: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1c/Alexander_Kerensky_LOC_hec_24462.jpg/400px-Alexander_Kerensky_LOC_hec_24462.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri315.html on line 287: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/ru/b/bf/Alekseev_mihail.jpg?20070813171444" height="300px" />
ellauri315.html on line 288: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d0/Lavr_Kornilov_Moscow_1917.jpg/1280px-Lavr_Kornilov_Moscow_1917.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri315.html on line 310: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2e/Ice_March.svg/800px-Ice_March.svg.png" />
ellauri315.html on line 314: VIDEO
ellauri315.html on line 367: Kirjallisuudessa brittikirjailija James Meekin vuoden 2005 romaani The Peopl e's Act of Love kuvailee Tšekkoslovakian legioonan ryhmän miehitystä siperialaisessa pikkukaupungissa vuonna 1919. Kaupungin alkuperäiset asukkaat ovat Skoptsyn tai kristillisen lahkon jäseniä, kaikki kastroituja.
ellauri315.html on line 376: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/ee/Vag%C3%B3n_vlaku_%C4%8Ds._legi%C3%AD.jpg" />
ellauri315.html on line 405: Me luettiin tätä kirjaa kreikan tunnilla, tuskin kelläkään oli aavistusta mistä siinä oikeastaan oli kymysys. On aika syventyä sotahistoriaan. Myriadi - 10 000 kreikkalaisen palkkasoturin joukko, jotka joutuivat loukkuun syvälle vihamieliselle alueelle ja joutuivat taistelemaan takaisin kotimaahansa taisteltuaan hävinneen puolen puolesta Achaemenidi-imperiumin sisällissodassa. Kuulostaapa tutulta. Plus ca change, pl us c'est la même chose. Xenofonin jälkeen seuraava oli Saska suuri, ja sit on tietysti toi Kaarle XII. Maailmanhistorian tollojen kuuluisia toilailuja.
ellauri315.html on line 459: ploads/2016/08/Ekaterina-Makarova-Nude-Sexy-2.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri315.html on line 470: Marina Rakova antoi tunnustuslausunnon oltuaan 9 kuukautta pidätyskeskuksessa, hän ja Zuev tarjoutuivat korvaamaan väitetyt vahingot. Journalistisissa tutkimuksissa on kuitenkin taipumus ajatella, että tapauksen pakotti itse asiassa kamppailu miljardirupl an koulukirjamarkkinoiden uudelleenjakamisesta sekä Rakovan ja hänen entisen päällikkönsä Olga Vasilievan sekä Prosvescheniye Publishingin johtajien välisten henkilökohtaiset konfliktit. Syyttäjä havaitsi kolme petoskohtaa. Ensimmäisessä tapauksessa Rakovaa ja Zakia syytettiin opetusministeriön 12 työntekijän kuvitteellisesta työllistämisestä RANEPAlle. Täähän on frankofiilin ihmistorpeedon Tytti Yli-Viikarin idean pl agiointia! Toiseksi syyttäjä uskoi, että vuonna 2019 Rakova ja hänen työtoverinsa varastivat 21 miljoonaa rupl aa, jotka oli osoitettu Tulevaisuuden opettaja -ohjelmalle, ja väärensi raportit. Koska pääurakoitsija oli MSSES, sen rehtori Sergei Zuev pidätettiin. 13. lokakuuta 2021 Zuev pidätettiin ja kuulusteltu epäiltynä Marina Rakova -tapauksessa. Rakova oli entinen varaopetusministeri, jota syytettiin 50 miljoonan rupl an valtion rahojen varastamisesta, jotka oli tarkoitettu MSSES:n koulutusohjelmaan Zuevin johdolla. Lokakuun 13. päivänä Zuevia syytettiin enää noin 21 miljoonan rupl an kavalluksesta. Zuev tietysti kiisti syyllistyneensä väärinkäytöksiin, joiden hänen kannattajansa sanovat olevan poliittisia.
ellauri315.html on line 486: Tisdag 12.9: En 20-årig man skjuts i huvudet i Sollentuna norr om Stockholm. Mannen dör, två personer flyr från pl atsen på elsparkcyklar.
ellauri316.html on line 26: КЕМ БЫТЬ? play:none">Kommando pimppeling
ellauri316.html on line 74: ploads/posts/2016-09/1472734041_1.jpg" />
ellauri316.html on line 104: katastrofia Tripl e Alliancen joukoille. Saksa, Itävalta ja Italia alkoivat
ellauri316.html on line 208: Kiryat Wolfson (Hebrew: קריית וולפסון), also known as Wolfson Towers, is a high-rise apartment compl ex in western Jerusalem. Comprising five towers ranging from 14 to 17 stories above-ground, the project was Jerusalem's first high-rise development. The project encountered opposition from both municipal officials and the public at each stage of its design and construction. The compl ex includes 10,000 square feet (930 m2) of commercial space and a medical center. The project was financed by the Edith and Isaac Wolfson Trust.
ellauri316.html on line 245: La nuit du 14 au 15 avril 1718, nuit du Vendredi Saint, Boureau-Deslandes est à Brest. Il raconte : « sur les 4 heures du matin, il fit trois coups de tonnerre les pl us horibles que j’aye jamais entendus. Dans cet espace de la Côte de Brêtagne qui s’étend depuis Conquerneau jusqu’à St. Paul de Leon, on a observé que le tonnerre étoit tombé sur 24 eglises differentes et à la même heure ». Cinq jours pl us tard, Deslandes entreprend son enquête à Gouesnou, village voisin de Brest, dont l’église a été transpercée par la réunion de « 3 globes de feu, chacun 3 piés et demi de diamètre » qui ont occasionné la mort de trois sonneurs de cloches. « Le tonnerre n’est tombé que sur les Eglises où l’on sonnoit des cloches, à dessein de l’écarter, et il a épargné toutes les autres. »
ellauri316.html on line 259: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/df/Map_Treaty_of_Brest-Litovsk-en.jpg/400px-Map_Treaty_of_Brest-Litovsk-en.jpg" />
ellauri316.html on line 298: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/72/Oskari-Tokoi-1958.jpg/500px-Oskari-Tokoi-1958.jpg" />
ellauri316.html on line 307: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e5/Prokudin-Gorskii-229v.jpg/480px-Prokudin-Gorskii-229v.jpg" />
ellauri316.html on line 314: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/ru/8/83/Vasil%27ev_A.N.jpg" />
ellauri316.html on line 318: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7c/%D0%9A%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B0%D0%BB%D1%91%D0%B2%2C_%D0%91%D0%BE%D1%80%D0%B8%D1%81_%D0%9D%D0%B8%D0%BA%D0%BE%D0%BB%D0%B0%D0%B5%D0%B2%D0%B8%D1%87.jpg/220px-%D0%9A%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B0%D0%BB%D1%91%D0%B2%2C_%D0%91%D0%BE%D1%80%D0%B8%D1%81_%D0%9D%D0%B8%D0%BA%D0%BE%D0%BB%D0%B0%D0%B5%D0%B2%D0%B8%D1%87.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri316.html on line 319: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/77/%D0%9D%D0%B0%D0%B3%D1%80%D1%83%D0%B4%D0%BD%D1%8B%D0%B9_%D0%B7%D0%BD%D0%B0%D0%BA_%C2%AB%D0%9F%D0%BE%D1%87%D1%91%D1%82%D0%BD%D1%8B%D0%B9_%D1%80%D0%B0%D0%B1%D0%BE%D1%82%D0%BD%D0%B8%D0%BA_%D0%B2%D1%8B%D1%81%D1%88%D0%B5%D0%B3%D0%BE_%D0%BF%D1%80%D0%BE%D1%84%D0%B5%D1%81%D1%81%D0%B8%D0%BE%D0%BD%D0%B0%D0%BB%D1%8C%D0%BD%D0%BE%D0%B3%D0%BE_%D0%BE%D0%B1%D1%80%D0%B0%D0%B7%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B0%D0%BD%D0%B8%D1%8F_%D0%A0%D0%BE%D1%81%D1%81%D0%B8%D0%B9%D1%81%D0%BA%D0%BE%D0%B9_%D0%A4%D0%B5%D0%B4%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%B0%D1%86%D0%B8%D0%B8%C2%BB.png/220px-thumbnail.png" height="250px" />
ellauri316.html on line 338: Neuvostoliiton kirjailijaliiton jäsenten allekirjoittama kirje, joka tuli tunnetuksi "63:n kirjeenä" (myös: 62, joku jänisti) vaati kirjoittajien vapauttamista takuita vastaan ja väittivät, että oikeudenkäynti itsessään aiheutti enemmän mainehaittaa kuin kirjoittajien teokset. Allekirjoittajina olivat Korney Chukovsky, Ilja Ehrenburg, Viktor Shklovsky, Venyamin Kaverin, Bella Akhmadulina,Bulat Okudzhava ja Arseny Tarkovski pl us 56 never heardia. (Tai 55.) Helmikuun 14. päivänä 1966 25 huomattavaa Neuvostoliiton intellektuellia kirjoitti avoimen kirjeen Leonid Brežneville, silloiselle pääsihteerille, pyytäen, ettei stalinismia palauteta kuntoon. Heidän joukossaan olivat akateemikot Andrei Saharov, Vitali Ginzburg, Jakov Zeldovitš, Mihail Leontovitš, Igor Tamm, Lev Artsimovitš, Pjotr Kapitsa ja Ivan Mayski, kirjailijat Konstantin Paustovsky [tästä hyypästä on muuten paasaus] ja Viktor Nekrasov, säveltäjä Dmitri Šostakovitš, näyttelijät Smoktu Innnovsky May, Oleg Yefremov ja monet muut vähemmän julkkixet. Kirjettä levitettiin laajalti samizdatissa, mutta virallinen lehdistö ei koskaan julkaissut sitä. Jotkut allekirjoittajista kärsivät seurauksista, kuten ulkomaille matkustamisen kieltämisestä ja teoksensa virallisen julkaisemisen rajoituksista.
ellauri316.html on line 381: ploads/sites/64/2018/07/artist-depiction-of-u-s-cavalry-chasing-native-americans.jpg?width=480" />
ellauri316.html on line 386: ploads/sites/64/2018/09/unionists-throughout-the-confederate-states-including-germans-resisted-the-imposition-of-conscription-in-1862-741x475.jpg?width=480" />
ellauri316.html on line 394: ploads/sites/64/2018/09/vladivostok-russia-soldiers-and-sailors-from-many-countries-are-lined-up-in-front-of-the-allies-headquarters-building-the-united-states-is-represented-741x559.jpg?width=480" />
ellauri316.html on line 401: ploads/sites/64/2018/09/u-s-troops-in-vladivostok-august-1918-741x454.jpeg?width=480" />
ellauri316.html on line 407: ploads/sites/64/2018/08/u-s-_marines_in_operation_allen_brook_vietnam_war_001_colorized-741x571.jpg?width=480" />
ellauri316.html on line 412: ploads/sites/64/2018/09/a-u-s-b-66-destroyer-and-four-f-105-thunderchiefs-dropping-bombs-on-north-vietnam-during-operation-rolling-thunder-510x640.jpg?width=480" />
ellauri316.html on line 417: ploads/sites/64/2018/09/the-ruins-of-a-section-of-saigon-in-the-cholon-neighborhood-following-fierce-fighting-between-arvn-forces-and-viet-cong-main-force-battalions-741x486.jpg?width=480" />
ellauri316.html on line 421: ploads/sites/64/2018/07/lossy-page1-637px-the_old_and_the_young_flee_tet_offensive_fighting_in_hue_managing_to_reach_the_south_shore_of_the_perfume_river_despite_-_nara_-_541870-tif-453x640.jpg?width=480" />
ellauri316.html on line 459: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/a5/Yelena_Bonner_1989_%28cropped%29.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri316.html on line 470: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c3/President_Ronald_Reagan_meeting_with_Soviet_dissident_Andrei_Sakharov_in_the_Oval_Office.jpg/1280px-President_Ronald_Reagan_meeting_with_Soviet_dissident_Andrei_Sakharov_in_the_Oval_Office.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri316.html on line 475: Sakharovin nimiin on pantu sen 7 antisovjet palkintoa. Entisen Neuvostoliiton toisinajattelijan Pjotr Vinsin, nyt Yhdysvalloissa asuva liikemies, rahoittamaa palkintoa hallinnoi auttamattomasti vanhentunut Glasnostin puolustussäätiö Moskovassa. Palkinnon "journalismista omantunnon tekona" ovat vuosien saatossa voittaneet kuuluisat toimittajat, kuten Anna Politikovskaja. Andrein prujut sijaizevat nyt Harvardin yliopistossa. Moldovan pääkaupungissa Chisinaussa on akateemikko Andrei Saharov-katu. PC-pelin STALKER: Shadow of Chernobyl ja sen esiosan Ecologists-ryhmän johtaja on professori Saharov-niminen tiedemies. Kuvitteellinen pl aneettojenvälinen avaruusalus Kosmonautti Aleksei Leonov romaanista 2010: Odyssey Two, kirjoittanut Arthur C. Clarke, saa voimansa "Sakharov-asemasta" nimeltä Tsar Bomba.
ellauri316.html on line 483: ploads-ssl.webflow.com/5fb3da0f64b65d2d7f02e3ed/60a11a332cfda2f50f850c74_%D0%91%D0%B0%D0%BD%D0%BD%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%BD%D0%B0%D1%8F%20%D0%B2%D1%8B%D1%81%D1%82%D0%B0%D0%B2%D0%BA%D0%B0.jpg" />
ellauri316.html on line 493: Kilpavarustelu asetti raskaan taakan siihen "vedettyjen" maiden talouksille, ja yli 2000 ydinkoeräjähdystä, joista 500 tapahtui maan päällä, aiheuttivat tuntuvia ympäristövahinkoja koko pl aneetalle. Vähemmän kuitenkin kuin vimmattu fossiilien polttelu ja kirottu muovi. Muovi! Muovi! huusi Lauri Hakulinen Kuusitien parvekkeelta. Vuonna 1987 Neuvostoliiton ja USA:n solmima sopimus keskipitkän ja lyhyemmän kantaman ohjusten poistamisesta on nyt katkolla. Kohta ne alkanevat meidän päiden yllä viuhua.
ellauri316.html on line 496: ploads-ssl.webflow.com/5fb3da0f64b65d2d7f02e3ed/60b4f565c86d9285bc29b4bd_%D0%9E%D0%BF%D0%BF%D0%B5%D0%BD%D0%B3%D0%B5%D0%B8%CC%86%D0%BC%D0%B5%D1%801-2.jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri316.html on line 497: ploads-ssl.webflow.com/5fb3da0f64b65d2d7f02e3ed/60b4f8fa85af901894ea4113_%D0%A5%D0%B0%D1%80%D0%B8%D1%82%D0%BE%D0%BD1-2.jpeg" height="400px" />
ellauri316.html on line 529: Ja mikä pahinta on maailman väkivaltainen uudelleenjako. Juuri tämän näemme eri muodoissa koko pl aneetalla. Muodikkaasta infektiosta suojaamattomien vihreiden paperipalojen heittämiseen helikoptereista.
ellauri316.html on line 531: Isoisä Lenin varoitti sata vuotta sitten, että näin tapahtuu. Kukaan ei ihmettele, kuinka maailman tehokkain ja rikkain maa - USA - voi samaan aikaan mennä konkurssiin? Koska pl aneetalla ei yksinkertaisesti ole tarpeeksi rahaa ulkoisen velan maksamiseen! Vaikka olisimme yhdessä kaikkien amerikkalaisten kanssa.
ellauri316.html on line 548: Akateemikko ei todellakaan ymmärrä, kuinka Yhdysvaltoja ei voi rakastaa. Neuvostoliitto ei pitänyt siitä ja romahti. Akateemikko kirjoittaa: "Maailmanlaajuisen romahduksen pitäisi olla hyvä opetus koko ihmiskunnalle." Jos et rakasta Yhdysvaltoja, sinut tuhotaan. Hyviä opetuksia maailman kilteimmältä demokratialta! Ja yleensä, akateemikon mukaan pl aneetalla on vain kaksi kunnollista maata - Kiina ja Yhdysvallat. Ja Venäjän tupakointipaikka on autotallien takana. Koska meillä on "post-imperial syndrooma".
ellauri316.html on line 658: a, pl . no, m. (ranskalainen naftaliini < kreikkalainen naftaöljy).
ellauri316.html on line 773: Emmekö voisi bensiinipulassamme luopua autoista? Emme voi. Ei siitä tule mitään. Nyt on väkiluku jo lähes 4G apinaa! Potti nokkiin vaan, kunnes pamahtaa, minkä jälkeen kärkijoukko voi siirtyä avaruus-Tesloihin ja pyrähtää seuraavalle asuttamattomalle pl aneetalle. Tästä skenaariosta olen kirjoittanut useita jännittäviä scifikirjoja, osta ja lue, tai kazo suorasoittona.
ellauri316.html on line 793: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/97/Vlassof.Himmler.jpg" />
ellauri316.html on line 816: ploaded-images/2023-05/72ce6180-edcd-11ed-befe-b41d82236af6" width="70%" />
ellauri316.html on line 831: In 1943, Vlasov published the Smolensk Proclamation, in which he declared that Bolshevism was “the enemy of the Russian peopl e.” His aim was to recruit other Russians now in Germany—the Nazis had taken hundreds of thousands of Red Army soldiers prisoner in the first two years of the war— to unite against the Soviet Union.
ellauri316.html on line 835: Vlasov’s life in Germany was far from lavish. “My underpants are compl etely worn out,” he compl ained at one point, according to one historian. Apparently, the Germans had only given him one pair.
ellauri316.html on line 845: Viron mezäveljiä hyllasi myös violettitukkainen fasisti-itätyttömme Sofi Oxanen. A Ukrainian Jew is working to untangle the legacy of far-right nationalist leader Stepan Bandera, another Nazi collaborator icon upl ifted by NATO.
ellauri317.html on line 26: AIVAN PARASTA ROISTOKIRJALLISUUTTA play:none">Roistomaista
ellauri317.html on line 99: У пекло, щоб і дух не пах. The trip to that unearthly pl ace. Jouti manalaan se vitun sika.
ellauri317.html on line 110: ploads/2022/04/Ukr1751.png" />
ellauri317.html on line 117: ploads/2022/04/NewSich.png" />
ellauri317.html on line 128: ploads/2022/04/AenEn.png" />
ellauri317.html on line 144: ploads/2022/04/Repl yIJR.png" />
ellauri317.html on line 151: Jo työn alussa ja varsinkin eeposen toisessa osassa nämä troijalaiset näyttävät yhä useammin siltä kasakkaeliittiltä (starshyna), jotka taistelun sijaan taivuttivat polvensa Venäjän valtakunnalle ja integroituivat venäläiseen upseerikuntaan ja jopa aatelistoon hankkien oikeuden omistaa entisaikojen vähemmän onnekkaita maanmiehiä (esim. Lavr Kornilov). Sen sijaan latinalaisia verrataan ekspl isiittisesti jaloihin ja kiusattuihin Zaporozshin kasakoihin (4.102), jotka jatkoivat kiivaasti Sichin ja vapaiden instituutioidensa puolustamista loppuun asti ulkomaalaisia hyökkääjiä vastaan.
ellauri317.html on line 189: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8e/Soviet_leaders_write_the_letter_of_defiance_to_George_Curzon.jpg/500px-Soviet_leaders_write_the_letter_of_defiance_to_George_Curzon.jpg" />
ellauri317.html on line 194: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/0d/George_Curzon2.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri317.html on line 205: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fd/Curzon_line_fi.svg/600px-Curzon_line_fi.svg.png" />
ellauri317.html on line 210: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Polska-ww1-nation.png/580px-Polska-ww1-nation.png">
ellauri317.html on line 217: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e7/Congress_Poland_1815.svg/1024px-Congress_Poland_1815.svg.png" />
ellauri317.html on line 332: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/73/Natalia_Sergeyevna_Goncharova.jpg" />
ellauri317.html on line 347: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/be/T._G._Masaryk_a_K._%C4%8Capek.gif/440px-T._G._Masaryk_a_K._%C4%8Capek.gif" />
ellauri317.html on line 379: ploads/sites/14/2020/07/usatsi_9562066.jpg?resize=768,990" />
ellauri317.html on line 473: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/a7/MariaSpiridonovaAntes1906.jpg" />
ellauri317.html on line 487: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7f/ConferenciaCampesinaMariaSpiridonova19171125-19171208.jpg/440px-ConferenciaCampesinaMariaSpiridonova19171125-19171208.jpg" />
ellauri317.html on line 542: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/52/Pavlo_Skoropadsky.jpg/440px-Pavlo_Skoropadsky.jpg" />
ellauri317.html on line 561: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/70/Paul_Rennenkampff.jpg/440px-Paul_Rennenkampff.jpg" />
ellauri317.html on line 571: Jotkut ukrainalaiset nazionalistit tuomitsivat hänet varakkaiden maanomistajien tukemana saksalaisena yhteistyökumppanina. Jotkut muut ukrainalaiset pitivät häntä liian Venäjä-mielisenä ja diktatuurina. Muun muassa Skoropadsky muodosti kabinetin, jossa oli pääasiassa venäjänkielisiä, tsaarilaisia ja slavofiilejä. Samalla hän sitoi Ukrainan liittoutumaan palautetun Venäjän imperiumin kanssa. Näistä kritiikistä huolimatta toisin kuin aikaisempi Keskusrata, hänen hallitukselleen annettiin tietyissä piireissä tunnustusta tehokkaan hallintoorganisaation muodostamisesta, junien aikataulussa pysymisestä, dipl omaattisuhteiden solmimisesta monien maiden kanssa, rauhansopimuksen tekemisestä Neuvosto-Venäjän kanssa ja useiden koulujen ja yliopistojen perustamisesta, mukaan lukien Ukrainan kansallisen tiedeakatemian.
ellauri317.html on line 595: Vuonna 1919 amerikkalainen dipl omaatti todisti kongressille, että Peterssiä pidettiin yhdessä toisen Chekan johtajan Aleksandr Eidukin kanssa "Venäjän verenhimoisimman hirviönä". Tuolloin englanninkieliset sanomalehdet yliarvioivat Peterssin vaikutuksen, koska poliisi tunsi hänet Isossa-Britanniassa ja koska hän oli ainoa Chekan perustajista, joka puhui englantia. 25. tammikuuta 1919 Lontoon The Times sai myöhään tietää, että bolshevikit olivat olleet erimielisiä siitä, käyvätkö vallankumouksellista sotaa Saksaa vastaan, ja väitti, että yhtä puoluetta johtaa Lenin ja toista Trotski, Peterss , Radek ja Zinovieff ....Trotskin ja Petersin puolue uskoo sankarillisiin toimenpiteisiin... Peterss ei ansainnut mainintaa missään Trotskin laajassa tuota ajanjaksoa koskevissa kirjoituksissa, eikä todellakaan ollut bolshevikkien johdon eturintamassa. Tšekistinä hän epäilemättä tapatti monia fellow apinoita, mutta hänen esittäminen "verenjanoisimmaksi hirviöksi" on ristiriidassa brittiläisen dipl omaatin Robert Bruce Lockhartin mielipiteen kanssa , joka vietti kuukauden pidätettynä Moskovassa vuonna 1918 ja jota Peterss kuulusteli. Lockhart kirjoitti:
ellauri317.html on line 600: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9b/%D0%A4%D0%B0%D0%BD%D0%BD%D0%B8_%D0%95%D1%84%D0%B8%D0%BC%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%BD%D0%B0_%D0%9A%D0%B0%D0%BF%D0%BB%D0%B0%D0%BD.jpg/440px-%D0%A4%D0%B0%D0%BD%D0%BD%D0%B8_%D0%95%D1%84%D0%B8%D0%BC%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%BD%D0%B0_%D0%9A%D0%B0%D0%BF%D0%BB%D0%B0%D0%BD.jpg" />
ellauri317.html on line 603: N:ro 2 Fanny Efimovna Kapl an (venäjäksi : Фанни Ефимовна Каплан ; oikea nimi Feiga Haimovna Roytblat ; Фейга Хаимовна Ройтблат ; 10. helmikuuta 1890 – 3. syyskuuta neuvostoliittolainen, 1918-luvun neuvostoliittolainen sosialisti- ja vauhdikas nainen toisinajattelija. Hänet pidätettiin Vladimir Leninin salamurhayrityksestä, ja Cheka teloitti hänet vuonna 1918.
ellauri317.html on line 617: Kapl anin taustasta tiedetään suhteellisen vähän. Hän syntyi juutalaiseen perheeseen. Hänen isänsä oli opettaja, ja hänellä oli seitsemän sisarusta. Hänen koko nimensä on ollut hämmentynyt. Vera Figner (muistelmissaan, At Women´s Katorga) totesi, että Kapl anin alkuperäinen nimi oli Feiga Khaimovna Roytblat-Kapl an (Фейга Хаимовна Ройтблат-Каплан). Muut lähteet ovat kuitenkin ilmoittaneet, että hänen alkuperäinen sukunimensä oli Roytman (Ройтман), joka vastaa yleistä saksan ja jiddisin sukunimeä Reutemann (רויטמאן ). Hänet tunnettiin joskus myös etunimellä Dora.
ellauri317.html on line 619: Kapl an oli kotona koulutettu ja lähti pian kotoa töihin hattumieheksi Odesaan. Hänestä tuli poliittinen vallankumouksellinen varhaisessa iässä ja hän liittyi sosialistiseen ryhmään, Socialist Revolutionaries (SRs). Vuonna 1906, kun hän oli 16-vuotias, Kapl an pidätettiin Kiovassa hänen osallistumisestaan terroristipommisuunnitelmaan. Hänet vangittiin, kun hänen ja hänen romanttisen kumppaninsa työskennellyt pommi räjähti vahingossa. Hän oli sitoutunut elinikäiseen katorgaan, kovan työn vankileirille. Hän palveli Maltsevin ja Akatuyn vankiloissa Nerchinsk katorgassa Siperiassa, jossa hän menetti näkönsä, joka palautettiin hänelle osittain myöhemmin. Hänet vapautettiin 3. maaliskuuta 1917, kun helmikuun vallankumous kaatoi keisarillisen hallituksen. Vangitsemisen seurauksena Kapl an kärsi jatkuvista päänsäryistä ja sokeuden jaksoista.
ellauri317.html on line 621: Kapl an pettyi Leniniin vuosina 1917-1918 SR:n ja bolshevikkien välisen konfliktin vuoksi. Bolshevikeilla oli vahva tuki neuvostoissa, mutta marraskuussa 1917 pidetyissä Perustavan kokouksen vaaleissa ei-bolshevikit olivat enemmistönä. Kun yleiskokous kokoontui tammikuussa 1918, sosialistinen vallankumouksellinen valittiin presidentiksi. Bolshevikit vastasivat hajottamalla Perustavan kokouksen. Elokuuhun 1918 mennessä bolshevikit olivat kieltäneet useimmat muut puolueet. Viimeksi he olivat kieltäneet vasemmistososialistiset vallankumoukselliset, entiset bolshevikkien tärkeimmät koalitiokumppanit, jotka kapinoivat heitä vastaan heinäkuussa Brest-Litovskin sopimus. Kapl an päätti murhata Leninin, koska hän piti häntä "vallankumouksen petturina".
ellauri317.html on line 623: 30. elokuuta 1918 Lenin puhui Hammer and Sickle -asetehtaalla Etelä- Moskovassa. Kun Lenin lähti rakennuksesta ja ennen kuin hän oli noussut autoonsa, Kapl an huusi häntä. Kun Lenin kääntyi häntä kohti, hän ampui kolme laukausta FN M1900 -pistoolilla. Yksi luoti meni Leninin takin läpi, ja kaksi muuta osui häneen. Yksi kulki hänen niskansa läpi, puhkaisi osan vasemmasta keuhkosta ja pysähtyi hänen oikean solisluunsa lähelle; toinen makasi vasempaan olkapäähän.
ellauri317.html on line 627: Nimeni on Fanya Kapl an. Tänään ammuin Leniniä. Tein sen itse. En kerro keneltä sain revolverini. En kerro yksityiskohtia. Olin päättänyt tappaa Leninin kauan sitten. Pidän häntä vallankumouksen petturina. Minut karkotettiin Akatuyyn osallistuttuani salamurhayritykseen tsaarivirkailijaa vastaan Kiovassa. Vietin 11 vuotta kovalla työllä. Vallankumouksen jälkeen minut vapautettiin. Kannatin perustuslakia ja olen edelleen sen puolesta.
ellauri317.html on line 629: Kapl an viittasi bolshevikkien kasvavaan autoritaarisuuteen vedoten heidän perustavan kokouksensa väkivaltaiseen sulkemiseen tammikuussa 1918, vaaleihin, joille he olivat hävinneet. Kun kävi selväksi, että Kapl an ei ottaisi rikoskumppaneita, hänet teloitettiin Aleksanterin puutarhassa. Käskyn toteuttivat Kremlin komentaja, entinen Baltian merimies PD Malkov ja joukko latvialaisia bolshevikkeja 3. syyskuuta 1918 luoti selänpäähän. Hänen ruumiinsa niputettiin tynnyriin ja sytytettiin palamaan. Tilaus tuli Yakov Sverdlovilta, joka vain kuusi viikkoa aiemmin oli tilannut tsaarin ja hänen perheensä murhan.
ellauri317.html on line 631: Jotkut historiänväärentäjät, kuten Dmitri Volkogonov, Arkady Vaksberg ja Donald Rayfield, ovat kyseenalaistaneet Kapl anin todellisen roolin salamurhayrityksessä. Volkogonov ehdotti, että "on todennäköisempää", että Kapl an ei itse asiassa ollut syyllinen ja kuvaili hänen salamurhayritystään "toiseksi monista bolshevikkien historian mystifikaatioista". Semion Lyandres meni niin pitkälle, että väitti, ettei Kapl an ollut edes SR.
ellauri317.html on line 638: No hui. Virallinen asetus punaisen terrorin ilmoittamisesta annettiin vain tunteja Kapl anin ampumisen jälkeen ja kehotti "kaikkien taisteluun vallankumouksen vihollisia vastaan". Seuraavien kuukausien aikana noin 800 oikeistopuoluetta ja muuta bolshevikkien poliittista vastustajaa teloitettiin. Ensimmäisen vuoden aikana punaisen terrorin ulottuvuus laajeni merkittävästi.
ellauri317.html on line 675: 6. heinäkuuta 1918 Aleksandrovitš osallistui vasemmistososialististen vallankumouksellisten aseelliseen kapinaan Moskovassa, joka liittyi bolshevikkihallituksen allekirjoittamaan Brest-Litovskin rauhansopimukseen ja sitä seuranneeseen Saksan suurlähettilään W. von Mirbachin murhaan. Vasemmistososialististen vallankumouksellisten. Oleg Vitalievich Mikhailovin mukaan Aleksandrovitš valvoi Chekan suurlähetystön turvallisuutta. Päivää ennen kansannousua, 5. heinäkuuta, hän lähetti auton Moskovan lähellä sijaitsevaan kylään toimittaakseen sen sosialistisen vallankumouksellisen johtajansa yhden Dmitri Popovin turvallisuusjoukkojen päämajaan, joka oli tuolloin sairaslomalla. Aamulla 6. heinäkuuta hän vahvisti Chekan sinetillä Yakov Blumkinin laatiman salaisen osaston todistuksen (työ ulkomaanvakoilusta) ja kirjoitti Chekan autotalliin muistiinpanon auton myöntämisestä. Sitten Aleksandrovich otti mukanaan 544 tuhatta rupl aa, jotka oli aiemmin otettu pidätetyltä henkilöltä, ja jotka oli määrä luovuttaa VChK Vault -osastolle.
ellauri317.html on line 697: VIDEO
ellauri317.html on line 702: VIDEO
ellauri317.html on line 715: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/09/Yaroslavl-photo142.jpg" />
ellauri317.html on line 786: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/d0/Vladimir_Purishkevich.jpg" height="300px"/>
ellauri317.html on line 787: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/23/Purishkevich.jpg" height="300px"/>
ellauri318.html on line 25: ple;background:white;text-align:right;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">JENS VAPIDUS
ellauri318.html on line 26: RAHALLA SAA JA HEVOSELLA PÄÄSEE play:none">Konnailua
ellauri318.html on line 28: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/6/6a/Snabba_Cash_2010_poster.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri318.html on line 43: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f2/Jens_Lapidus_%28Bok_%26_Bibliotek_2008%29.jpg/465px-Jens_Lapidus_%28Bok_%26_Bibliotek_2008%29.jpg?20080926083838" />
ellauri318.html on line 62: Johan "JW" Westlund kommer från blygsam bakgrund men låtsas vara en bratkille. Han lever ett dubbelliv som stekare på de hetaste inneställena på Sturepl an och kör svarttaxi för att finansiera sina dyra vanor samtidigt som han studerar ekonomi på Handelshögskolan. När han förälskar sig i överklasstjejen Sophie lockas han in en värld av organiserad brottslighet. Jorge gör en osannolik rymning från fängelset och är på flykt från både polisen och den serbiska maffian. Hans pl an är att göra en sista kokainleverans och sedan lämna landet för gott. Mrado är en brutal underboss inom den serbiska maffian och är i konflikt med huvudbossen Radovan. Han får i uppdrag att hitta Jorge, men tvingas samtidigt ta hand om sin 8-åriga dotter som bor i Lovisa.
ellauri318.html on line 66: The essence of the given name Mrado stands for compassion, creativity, reliability, generosity, loyalty and a love for domestic life. Family takes always priority in your life. It is the foundation of your traditional values. Nevertheless you are not compl etely unselfish, because of a tendency to teach others while expecting gratitude.
ellauri318.html on line 68: No matter how difficult a challenge is, you are capable of compl eting it by using your exceptionally quick wits and tremendous adaptability powers.
ellauri318.html on line 71: Sexually very active you often connect with new peopl e, which makes you well informed. With strong linguistic skills you quickly see through the fine print when concluding contracts. Your journalistic skills make you a great researcher who could possibly discover the secrets of life.
ellauri318.html on line 75: Being a kind person who likes to help others can sometimes slow you down when trying to accompl ish your own goals.
ellauri318.html on line 96: 2003 spelade Elin "Grynet" Ek in sången, där singeln som bäst nådde andrapl atsen på den svenska singellistan. I denna version var orden "De är bögar allihopa" utbytta mot "De är puckon allihopa."
ellauri318.html on line 133: Lars Kepl er
ellauri318.html on line 135: And Now for Something Compl etely Different!
ellauri318.html on line 137: pler Lars">Lars Kepl er on kirjailijanimi, jota käyttää ruotsalainen aviopari Alexander Ahndoril (s. 20. tammikuuta 1967 Uppl ands Väsby) ja Alexandra Coelho Ahndoril (s. 2. maaliskuuta 1966 Helsingborg). He ovat julkaisseet Lars Kepl erin nimellä yhdeksän dekkaria.
ellauri318.html on line 139: Elokuussa 2009 ruotsalainen Aftonbladet paljasti Kepl erin oikean henkilöllisyyden.
ellauri318.html on line 140: Namnet Lars Kepl er är en pseudonym.
ellauri318.html on line 143: Namnet Kepl er kommer från den tyske forskaren Johannes Kepl er (1571–1630), som löste ett av sin tids största mysterier med sina beräkningar av pl aneters rörelsemönster som banade vägen för Newtons teser om gravitationen. Mördaren var Pluto. Pluto you are a clown!
ellauri318.html on line 146: Den 18 februari 2020 meddelade Albert Bonniers Förlag att Lars Kepl er var förra decenniets bäst säljande författare.
ellauri318.html on line 156: Vanhuslukijoille hyvä piirre Kepl ereillä on et ne kertaa kaiken hyvin selkeästi eikä jätä mitään lukijalle arvoituxexi. Kirja etenee kuin juna asemalta toiselle. Tai kuin jenkki väikkäri: sano ensin mitä aiot sanoa, sitten sano se, sen jälkeen kertaa mitä sanoit ymmärryxen varmistuxexi.
ellauri318.html on line 161: ploads/2022/11/kepl er_03.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri318.html on line 166: Jonottakaa , huutaa Joona suomexi palkkakonnalle. Se häkeltyy siitä niin et Joona saa loput lusmut ammutuxi viime patilla. BUAHAHA Kepl erit, tää oli ihan huippua. Tälle nauraisi Pertti Rasinkangaskin. Nauraisi "Niko Kapanen"kin, tuo suomalainen stm Vanhanen, ellei mahahaavaan sattuisi. Ruåzi voitti kisan mutta sitkeä pieni Suomi kiri toisexi. Nyt on vihdoin mureampi Ruåzikin lopultakin kakkosena Natossa hiusverkkojoukkoineen. Den glider in.
ellauri318.html on line 168: VIDEO
ellauri318.html on line 189: Neuvostoajan taakseen jättäneessä Ukrainassa eläkekupongit eivät riittäneet edes maksamaan maitoa. Kurjuus ja elämän kalleus saivat ihmiset kaipaamaan vanhaa järjestelmää. ”Me haluamme takaisin rupl avyöhykkeeseen. Kommunistit alas, mutta Neuvostoliitto takaisin”, huusi vanha nainen simferopolilaisella torilla toimittaja Saska Saarikoskelle.
ellauri318.html on line 208: pload/ar_1.5,c_fill,g_faces,h_800,w_1200/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/v1652184217/39-952905627a53b03ef59" width="30%" />
ellauri318.html on line 258: noise and the optimism. I love that peopl e come here with
ellauri318.html on line 314: ploads/2018/11/Church-of-the-SubGenius.jpg?resize=600%2C350&ssl=1" />
ellauri318.html on line 344: Diskordalaiset levittelivät sitten transhumanismin mieliteemoja, kuten napaan katselevat älykkäät huumeet, virtuaalitodellisuus, kybersodankäynti, vuorovaikutteinen media, afrodisiakit, keinotekoinen elämä, nanoteknologia, aivoimpl antteja, eliniän pidentäminen sekä suunnittelijoiden afrodisiakeja, psykedeelejä ja teknoeroottista pakanuutta.
ellauri318.html on line 348: ploads/2018/11/download-9.jpg?resize=200%2C285&ssl=1" />
ellauri318.html on line 350: Lars Kepl er hyspominisoija
ellauri318.html on line 352: Vaihtorotilta löytyi Lars Kepl er Hypnotisoija, myös elokuvana. Valitettavasti suomexi, ei voi nauraa Andorillien huisin hauskoille "hoono soomi" piloille Joonan kustannuxella. Helskatti noita apinoita joiden mielestä tarinat vaan paranevat kun niistä tehdään leffoja. Se on todella syvältä. Kansikuvan elokuvajoona ei näytä yhtään Joonalta, joku tollanen vinosuinen laihanaama joka ei ole edes raakannut partaansa.
ellauri318.html on line 354: Yhteistä Kepl er sepustuxille taitaa olla että kasvottomat pahixet ajaa takaa jotain tyttöä, ja että joku sivupäähenkilö kärsii unettomuudesta. Näissä krimisarjoissa eniten ehkä vituttaa että joka hemmetin iikalla on jotain ongelmia kotona, vammasia nurkissa tai huumehemmoja, eikä kukaan ehdi edes syömään rauhassa kun puhelin jo taas piippaa "mun täytyy ottaa tää". Helvetti eikö koko poliisivoimissa ole yhtään ehjää perhettä tai kiiretöntä lounastajaa, joka nukkuu yönsä kunnolla? Ei ole. Svedukrimit on väärällään syrjäytynyttä rupusakkia. Ei ihme kun maa on täynnä tollasia matujen kansoittamia Tenstoja. Tai hei, onhan niilä nyt toi Petra Lundh, som är inget arbetsbi .
ellauri321.html on line 25: JUAN AMERIKASSA
play:none">Matuja
ellauri321.html on line 45: After a brief legal career he was empl oyed by the Earl of Essex in a foreign dipl omatic capacity, the main purpose of which was to gain intelligence on the activities of England's European neighbours. Wotton became ambassador to Venice and his eternal lines, "An Ambassador is an honest man, sent to lie abroad for the good of his country" no doubt reflects his disillusionment with the dupl icity of the role. When on a mission to Augsburg, in 1604, he actually said, "An ambassador is an honest gentleman sent to lie abroad for the good of his country". King Jim siitä vähän pahentui.
ellauri321.html on line 73: As a character, Sam Weller compl ements Mr. Pickwick, just as Sancho Panza compl ements Don Quixote. Whereas Mr. Pickwick is innocent and elderly, Sam is experienced and young, the most intelligent character in the novel. If Mr. Pickwick loses his temper easily, Sam is quite self-possessed. While Mr. Pickwick has no romantic intentions, Sam carries on a... Скрыть
ellauri321.html on line 99: This little volume had made its mark on both sides of the Atlantic not many years before Hazlitt noticed it. It appeared in London in 1782 with this somewhat ponderous title-page: Letters from an American Farmer, Describing Certain Provincial Situations, Manners and Customs, and Conveying Some Idea Of The State Of The Peopl e Of North America, Written xi to a Friend in England, By J. Hector St. John, A Farmer In Pennsylvania. Tästä varmaan radikaali Mary otti matkakirjaan mallia.
ellauri321.html on line 101: A new English edition appeared in the year following, and an American reprint of the editio princeps was brought out by Matthew Carey in Philadelphia in 1793. In the meantime its author, whose full name was J. Hector Saint John de Crèvecoeur, had himself translated the book into French, adding to it very considerably, and publishing it in Paris in 1784.* A second French edition, still further enlarged and containing excellent maps and pl ates, appeared in 1787. These bibliographical facts are significant. They show that for at least twenty years, probably for a much longer period, the “Letters from an American Farmer” was an important interpreter of the New World to the Old. It seems to have been in answer to a demand aroused by his first book that Crèvecoeur ventured to treat the same theme once more. But the three bulky volumes of his “Journey in Upper Pennsylvania” (1801) contain little that is now or illuminating.
ellauri321.html on line 105: For many years after Hazlitt had sounded his note of praise, Crèvecoeur and his work remained practically unknown. The ideas for which he stood, the literary atmosphere that he created, were both old-fashioned. Few peopl e took Rousseau from their upper shelves, and the dust gathered on the tomes of Chateaubriand. Even Werther was more talked about than read. And so no one cared for this Earthly Paradise of the Age of Reason dashed with Rousseau's sentimentality, filled with his love of Nature, and prophetic of the whole Emigrant literature of France.
ellauri321.html on line 107: J. Hector Saint John de Crèvecoeur was born at Caen on January 31, 1735, of a noble family which had pl ayed some part in Norman history as early as the eleventh century.
ellauri321.html on line 108: In 1747, in his sixteenth year, Crèvecoeur was sent by his family to England in order to compl ete his education. But the young man was of an adventurous spirit, and after a sojourn of about seven years in England, he set sail for Canada, where for the years 1758–59 he served in the French army. In 1764, after some residence in Pennsylvania, he became a naturalized citizen of New York, and five years later settled on a farm in Ulster County. Here, with his wife, Mahetable Tiffet of Yonkers, he lived the peaceful life of many idyllic years during which he gathered the materials for his book. Obviously enough he did not always remain on his farm, but viewed many parts of the country with a quietly observing eye. These journeys are recorded in his pages. He expl ored pretty thoroughly the settled portions of the States of New York and Pennsylvania, saw something of New England, and also penetrated westward to the limits of the colonies. He went as far South as Charleston, and may have visited Jamaica. Beyond such journeyings we may imagine these years to have xiv have been quite barren of events, serene and peaceful, until the storm of the Revolution began to break. It is not until 1779 that anything of import is again recorded of Crèvecoeur. In that year he made an attempt to return to Normandy, but the sudden appearance of a French fleet in the harbor of New York causing him to be suspected as a spy, he was imprisoned for three months. He was then permitted to sail, and, on his arrival in England, sold for thirty guineas his “Letters from an American Farmer,” which were published at London in 1782, the year after he reached France.
ellauri321.html on line 110: The success of his book and his efforts to improve the agricultural conditions of Normandy made Crèvecoeur a welcome guest in France. He spent some pl easant months in French literary society, into which he was probably introduced by Mme. de Houdetot, one of the many heroines of Rousseau's “Confessions.” To this lady, an old friend of his father, he also owed his introduction to Franklin.* He returned to America at the end of 1783.
ellauri321.html on line 117: Crèvecoeur sought and found, or imagined that he had found, that land of pl ain living and high thinking, of simpl e virtue and untrammeled manhood, which was one of the dreams of his age. Here were none of those social distinctions against which Werther so bitterly rebelled. The restraints of law were reduced to a minimum and in Crèvecoeur's favorite Society of Friends (of which he gave a long account to his French countrymen) there were not even priests. In a word, the spiritual rebellion of that period was essentially a rebellion against institutions, and the real corresponded very nearly to the ideal in colonial America. Beyond the limits of the colonies, moreover, the absolute ideal hovered.
ellauri321.html on line 119: This was the Indian; not the red man of actual flesh an and xvii and blood, but the Tenewissa of Crèvecoeur, and the Atala of Chateaubriand. The pressure of the tyrannous centuries drove men to an ideal of extreme liberty. It was the Indian, living in uninterrupted communion with Nature, and within the most flexible of societies, whom they contrasted with the European held in the iron vise of a compl ex and traditional social order. All the undeniable charm of this ideal of freedom, of simpl icity, of a life close to Nature, Crèvecoeur embodied in his book.
ellauri321.html on line 123: But Crèvecoeur was after all a Frenchman, with the strong social instinct of his race. And so he proceeds to analyze and define the political conditions of America. It fills him with a quiet but deep satisfaction to be one of a community of “freeholders, the possessors of the soil they cultivate, members of the government they obey, and the framers of their own laws by means of their representatives.” Thus he rises to a consideration of this new type of social man and seeks to answer the question: What xx What is an American? His answer is delightful literature, but fanciful sociology. Had the colonial farmers all been Crèvecoeurs, had they all possessed his ideality, his power of raising simpl e things into true human dignity, of connecting the homeliest activity with the ultimate social purpose which it furthers in its own small way, his description of the American would have been fair enough. As a matter of fact, the hard-working colonial farmer, cut off from the refining and subduing influences of an older civilization, was probably no very delectable type, however worthy, and one fears that Professor Wendell is right in declaring that Crèvecoeur's American is no more human than some ideal savage of Voltaire. But in this fact lies much of the literary charm of his work, and of its value as a human document of the age of the Revolution.
ellauri321.html on line 131: Yet when young I entertained some thoughts of selling my farm. I thought it afforded but a dull repetition of the same labours and pl easures. I thought the former tedious and heavy, the latter few and insipid; but when I came to consider myself as divested of my farm, I then found the world so wide, and every pl ace so full, that I began to fear lest there would be no room for me. My farm, my house, my barn, presented to my imagination, objects from which I adduced quite new ideas; they were more forcible than before. Why should not I find myself happy, said I, where my father was before? He left me no good books it is true, he gave me no other education than the art of reading and writing; but he left me a good farm, and his experience; he left me free from debts, and no kind of difficulties to struggle with 24 with.—I married, and this perfectly reconciled me to my situation; my wife rendered my house all at once chearful and pl easing; it no longer appeared gloomy and solitary as before; when I went to work in my fields I worked with more alacrity and sprightliness; I felt that I did not work for myself alone, and this encouraged me much. My wife would often come with her kitting in her hand, and sit under the shady trees, praising the straightness of my furrows, and the docility of my horses; this swelled my heart and made every thing light and pl easant, and I regretted that I had not married before. I felt myself happy in my new situation, and where is that station which can confer a more substantial system of felicity than that of an American farmer, possessing freedom of action, freedom of thoughts, ruled by a mode of government which requires but little from us? Every year I kill from 1500 to 2,000 weight of pork, 1,200 of beef, half a dozen of good wethers in harvest: of fowls my wife has always a great stock: what can I wish more?
ellauri321.html on line 135: When I contempl ate my wife, by my fire-side, while she either spins, knits, darns, or suckles our child, I cannot describe the various emotions of love, of gratitude, of conscious pride which thrill in my heart, often overflow in involuntary tears.
ellauri321.html on line 137: Whenever I go abroad it is always involuntary. I never return home without feeling some pl easing emotion, which I often suppress as useless and foolish. The instant I enter on my own land, the bright idea of property, of exclusive right, of independence exalt my mind. Precious soil, I say to myself, by what singular custom of law is it that thou wast made to constitute the riches of the freeholder? What should we American farmers be without the distinct possession of that soil? It feeds, it clothes us, from it we draw even a great exuberancy, our best meat, our richest drink, the very honey of our bees comes from this privileged spot. No wonder we should thus cherish its possession, no wonder that so many Europeans who have never been able to say that such portion of land was theirs, cross the Atlantic to realize that happiness. this is what may be called the true and the only philosophy of an American farmer. He is like a cock perhaps, arrayed with the most majestic pl umes, tender to its mate, bold, courageous, endowed with an astonishing instinct to fuck, with thoughts, with memory, and every distinguishing characteristic of the reason of man. I really enjoy killing all my animals, like doves, my record is fourteen dozen.
ellauri321.html on line 146: The next wish of this traveller will be to know whence came all these peopl e? they are a mixture of English, Scotch, Irish, French, Dutch, Germans, and Swedes. (Oh, and sundry Indians and Africans, who however own no land.)
ellauri321.html on line 148: Urged by a variety of motives that we need not go into, here they came. The laws, the indulgent laws, protect them as they arrive, stamping on them the symbol of adoption; they receive ampl e rewards for their labours;
ellauri321.html on line 154: The American is a new man, homo novus, who acts upon new principl es; he must therefore entertain new ideas, and form new opinions. From involuntary idleness, servile dependence, penury, and useless labour, he has passed to toils of a very different nature, rewarded by ampl e subsistence.—This is an American.
ellauri321.html on line 156: Those who live near the sea, feed more on fish than on flesh, and often encounter that boisterous element. This renders them more bold and enterprising; this leads them to neglect the confined occupations of the land. They see and converse with a variety of peopl e; their intercourse with mankind becomes extensive. The sea inspires them with a love of traffic, a desire of transporting produce from one pl ace to another; and leads them to a variety of resources which suppl y the pl ace of labour. Those who inhabit the middle settlements, by far the most numerous, must be very different; the simpl e cultivation of the earth purifies them, but the indulgences of the government, the soft remonstrances of religion, the rank of independent freeholders, must necessarily inspire them with sentiments, very little known in Europe among peopl e of the same class. What do I say? Europe has no such class of men; the early knowledge they acquire, the early bargains they make, give them a great degree of sagacity. As freemen men 58 they will be litigious; pride and obstinacy are often the cause of law suits; the nature of our laws and governments may be another. As citizens it is easy to imagine, that they will carefully read the newspapers, enter into every political disquisition, freely blame or censure governors and others. As farmers they will be carful and anxious to get as much as they can, because what they get is their own. As northern men they will love the chearful cup.
ellauri321.html on line 161: By living in or near the woods, their actions are regulated by the wildness of the neighbourhood. The deer often come to eat their grain, the wolves to destroy their sheep, the bears to kill their hogs, the foxes to catch their poultry. This surrounding hostility, immediately puts the gun into their hands; they watch 67 watch these animals, they kill some; and thus by defending their property, they soon become professed hunters; this is the progress; once hunters, farewell to the pl ough. The chase renders them ferocious, gloomy, and unsociable; a hunter wants no neighbour, he rather hates them, because he dreads the competition. In a little time their success in the woods makes them neglect their tillage. They trust to the natural fecundity of the earth, and therefore do little; carelessness in fencing, often exposes what little they sow to destruction; they are not at home to watch;
ellauri321.html on line 164: These new manners being grafted on the old stock, produce a strange sort of lawless profligacy, the impressions of which are indelible. The manners of the Indian natives are respectable, compared with this European medley. Their wives and children live in sloth and inactivity; and having no proper pursuits, you may judge what education the latter receive. Their tender minds have nothing else to contempl ate but the exampl e of their parents; like them they grow up a mongrel breed, half civilized, half savage, except nature stamps on them some constitutional propensities. 68 propensities. That rich, that voluptuous sentiment is gone that struck them so forcibly; the possession of their freeholds no longer conveys to their minds the same pl easure and pride.
ellauri321.html on line 166: Near the great woods, in the last inhabited districts men seem to be pl aced still farther beyond the reach of government, which in some measure leaves them to themselves. How can it pervade every corner; as they were driven there by misfortunes, tunes, necessity of beginnings, desire of acquiring large tracks of land, idleness, frequent want of œconomy, ancient debts; the re-union of such peopl e does not afford a very pl easing spectacle. When discord, want of unity and friendship; when either drunkenness or idleness prevail in such remote districts; contention, inactivity, and wretchedness must ensue. There are not the same remedies to these evils as in a long established community. The few magistrates they have, are in general little better than the rest; they are often in a perfect state of war; that of man against man, sometimes decided by blows, sometimes by means of the law; that of man against every wild inhabitant of these venerable woods, of which they are come to dispossess them. There men appear to be no better than carnivorous animals of a superior rank, living on the flesh of wild animals when they can catch them, and when they are not able, they subsist on grain. Eating of wild meat, whatever you may think, tends to alter their temper.
ellauri321.html on line 168: So he who would wish to see America in its proper light, and have a true idea of its feeble beginnings and barbarous rudiments, must visit our extended line of frontiers where the last settlers dwell, and where he may see the first labours of settlement, the mode of clearing the earth, in all their different appearances; where men are wholly left dependent on their native tempers, and on the spur of uncertain industry, which often fails when not sanctified by the efficacy of a few moral rules. There, remote from the power of exampl e, and check of shame, many families exhibit the most hideous parts of our society. They are a kind of forlorn hope, preceding by ten or twelve years the most respectable army of veterans which come after them. In that space, prosperity will polish some, vice and the law will drive off the rest, who uniting again with others like themselves will recede still farther; making room for more industrious peopl e, who will finish their improvements, convert the loghouse into a convenient habitation, and rejoicing that the first heavy labours are finished, will change in a few years that hitherto barbarous country into a fine fertile, well regulated district. Such is our progress, such is the march of the Europeans toward the interior parts of this continent. In all societies there are off-casts; this impure part serves as our precursors or pioneers; my father himself was one of that class, but he came upon honest principl es, and was therefore one of the few who held fast; by good conduct and temperance, he transmitted to me his fair inheritance, when not above one in fourteen of his contemporaries had the same good fortune.
ellauri321.html on line 170: As I have endeavoured to shew you how Europeans become Americans; it may not be disagreeable to shew you likewise how the various Christian sects introduced, wear out, and how religious indifference becomes prevalent. When any considerable number of a particular sect happen to dwell contiguous to each other, they immediately erect a templ e, and there worship the Divinity agreeably to 62 their own peculiar ideas. Nobody disturbs them. If any new sect springs up in Europe, it may happen that many of its professors will come and settle in America. As they bring their zeal with them, they are at liberty to make proselytes if they can, and to build a meeting and to follow the dictates of their consciences; for neither the government nor any other power interferes. If they are peaceable subjects, and are industrious, what is it to their neighbours how and in what manner they think fit to address their prayers to the Supreme Being? But if the sectaries are not settled close together, if they are mixed with other denominations, their zeal will cool for want of fuel, and will be extinguished in a little time. Then the Americans become as to religion, what they are as to country, allied to all. In them the name of Englishman, Frenchman, and European is lost, and in like manner, the strict modes of Christianity as practised in Europe are lost also.
ellauri321.html on line 175: Thus our bad peopl e are those who are half cultivators and half hunters; and the worst of them are those who have degenerated altogether into the hunting state. As old pl oughmen and new men of the woods, as Europeans and new made Indians, they contract the vices of both; they adopt the moroseness and ferocity of a native, without his mildness, or even his industry at home. If manners are not refined, at least they are rendered simpl e and inoffensive by tilling the earth; all our wants are suppl ied by it, our time is divided between labour and rest, and leaves none for the commission of great misdeeds. As hunters it is divided between the toil of the chase, the idleness of repose, or the indulgence of inebriation.
ellauri321.html on line 178: yet, when it is united with bad luck, it leads to want: want stimulates that propensity to rapacity and injustice, too natural to needy men, which is the 70 the fatal gradation. After this expl anation of the effects which follow by living in the woods, shall we yet vainly flatter ourselves with the hope of converting the Indians? We should rather begin with converting our back-settlers. the back-settlers of both the Carolinas, Virginia, and many other parts, have been long a set of lawless peopl e; it has been even dangerous to travel among them.
ellauri321.html on line 180: Thus are our first redskins trod, thus are our first trees felled, in general, by the most vicious of our peopl e; and thus the path is opened for the arrival of a second and better class, the true American free-holders.
ellauri321.html on line 182: There is room for every body in America; has he any particular talent, or industry? he exerts it in order to procure a livelihood, and it succeeds. Is he a merchant? the avenues of trade are infinite; is he eminent in any respect? he will be empl oyed and respected. Does he love a country life? pl easant farms present themselves; he may purchase what he wants, and thereby become an American farmer. Is he a labourer, sober and industrious? he need not go many miles, nor receive many informations before he will be hired, well fed at the table of his empl oyer, and paid four or five times more than he can get in Europe. Does he want uncultivated lands? Thousands of acres present themselves, which he may purchase cheap. Whatever be his talents or inclinations, if they are moderate, he may satisfy them. I do not mean that every one who comes will grow rich in a little time; no, but he may procure an easy, decent low maintenance, by his industry. Instead of starving he will be fed, instead of being idle he will have empl oyment; and these are riches enough for such men as come over here.
ellauri321.html on line 184: But how is this accompl ished in that croud of low, indigent peopl e, who flock here every year from all parts of Europe? I will tell you; they no sooner arrive than they immediately feel the good effects of that pl enty of provisions we possess: they fare on our best food, and they are kindly entertained; their talents, character, and peculiar industry are immediately inquired into; they find countrymen every where disseminated, let them come from whatever part of Europe.
ellauri321.html on line 186: Let me select one as an epitome of the rest, say this wetback from South America: he is hired, he goes to work, and works moderately; instead of being empl oyed by a haughty person, he finds himself with his equal, pl aced at the substantial table of the farmer, or else at an inferior one as good; his wages are high, his bed is not like that bed of sorrow on which he used to lie: if he behaves with propriety, and is faithful, he is caressed, and becomes as it were a member of the Amazon family.
ellauri321.html on line 189: he is advised and directed, he feels bold, he purchases some land; he gives all the money he has brought over, as well as what he has earned, and trusts to the God of harvests for the discharge of the rest. His good name procures him credit. He is now possessed of the deed, conveying to him and his posterity the fee simpl e and absolute property of two hundred acres of land, situated on such a shit creek without a paddle. What an epoch in this man's life! He is become a freeholder, from perhaps a Mexican boor—he is now an American, a Pennsylvanian, an English subject.
ellauri321.html on line 200: Andrew, what step do you intend to take in order to become rich? Have you brought any money with you, Andrew? I'll tell you what I intend to do; I'll send you to my house, where you shall stay two or three weeks, there you must exercise yourself with the axe, that is the principal tool the Americans want, and particularly the back-settlers. Can your wife spin? Well then as soon as you are able to handle the axe, you shall go and live with Mr. P. R. a particular friend of mine, who will give you four dollars per month, for the first six, and the usual price of five as long as you remain with him. I shall pl ace your wife in another house, where she shall receive half a dollar a week for spinning; and your son a dollar a month to drive the team.
ellauri321.html on line 204: I will lease them an hundred acres for any term of years you pl ease, and make it more valuable to your Scotchman than if he was possessed of the fee simpl e.
ellauri321.html on line 209: Tämä hyvä, mutta Froggie pilaa antamansa suotuisan vaikutelman loppuluvussa jossa se päättää ryhtyäkin punanahaxi. The Supreme Being does not reside in peculiar churches or communities; he is equally the great Manitou of the woods and of the pl ains; and even in the gloom, the obscurity of those very woods, his justice may be as well understood and felt as in the most sumptuous templ es. Each worship with us, hath, you know, its peculiar political tendency; there it has none but to inspire gratitude and truth: their tender minds shall receive no other idea of the Supreme Being, than that of the father of all men, who requires nothing more of them than what tends to make us others happy. We shall say with them. Soungwanèha, èsa caurounkyawga, nughwonshauza neattèwek, nèsalanga. — Our father, be thy will done in earth as it is in great heaven.
ellauri321.html on line 220: Set in the year before the Wall Street crash, Juan in America is a classic evocation of the final mania of prohibition, as seen through equally maniacal British eyes. The character Eric Linklater devised to be his unreliable expl orer was one capable of absorbing the enormity of the American experience without being overwhelmed by its incongruities. A blithe, bastard descendent of Byron(tm)s Don Juan, Linklater´s Juan is an anti-hero with a taste for the grotesque and the ridiculous, at once both dirty and deity whose response when faced either with sudden catastrophe or miraculous survival is simpl y to laugh. A novel in the mode of the picaresque, this is a story of erotic discovery in the sense, as Juan puts it, that, eh, your trousers hide not only your willy but your kinship to the clown. A nation emerging as a great power is exalting in absurdist energies. In its last spasms before the great depression, America is revealed through a series of unlikely accidents as Juan stumbles from state to state, somehow evading consequences as he goes. On his first day, he falls for the daughter of a gangster, witnesses a murder in a speakeasy and watches a woman leap to her death in a New York street. He thrills to the bizarreness of each spectacle and moves on to the next in a galloping mood that is part medieval romance, part running commentary on what was still, in the 1920s, the new world.
ellauri321.html on line 242: A war can last be over for generations before the whole truth gets out. For exampl e, many Americans don’t know the U.S. Army NEVER defeated the Seminoles.
ellauri321.html on line 258: Sorry, but the background and impl ications of the 2014 far-right coup in Kiev, which overthrew the pro-Russian President Viktor Yanukovych, is critical for understanding the current Ukraine-Russia war. This coup was openly supported by US and European imperialism and impl emented primarily by far-right shock troops such as the Right Sector and the neo-Nazi Svoboda Party.
ellauri321.html on line 260: It represented the temporary culmination of long-standing efforts by US imperialism to install a puppet regime on the borders of Russia and brought the world a major step closer to a war between the largest nuclear powers, the US and Russia. Ukraine has since been systematically built up as a launching pad for a NATO war against Russia.The regime change prompted the outbreak of an ongoing civil war in the east of Ukraine, between Russian-backed separatists and the US-backed Ukrainian army, that has claimed the lives of tens of thousands and displ aced millions.
ellauri321.html on line 264: The peopl e at the top of the government in Ukraine as well as those in the governments of the collective West add immensely to their bank accounts. Zelenskyy, for exampl e, just purchased a multimillion dollar estate in Egypt to go along with the multimillion dollar villas in Italy and Switzerland, the multimillion dollar townhouse in London, the multimillion dollar beachfront house in Miami, among others. In this way, he repl aced the multimillion dollar property in Crimea that was confiscated by Russia to be sold and the money was donated to children who have been orphaned by the conflict.
ellauri321.html on line 324: Vivian Schiller joined the Scott Trust in 2015. She is Executive Director of Aspen Digital, a program of the Aspen Institute. Previously she has held multipl e high-profile media roles including head of news at Twitter, general manager of NYTimes.com and president and CEO of National Public Radio.
ellauri321.html on line 326: Russell "Beam me up" Scott joined the Scott Trust in 2015, and is the Scott Trust’s only senior independent director AKA owner. He runs a consultancy business specialising in strategy and execution for digital audience growth and monetisation. He is also co-founder of Grazer Learning, a start-up digital education pl atform and provides commercial support to a number of other tech start-ups. Previously he held multipl e senior roles in consumer publishing, digital and broadcast sectors including Content Director of The Football League, Commercial Director of Northcliffe media and MD of fish4, a digital classified JV between 5 major UK regional senior pressure groups.
ellauri321.html on line 334: Now there is a bunch of good reasons why peopl e choose NOT to support the Guardian. It is a real hornet´s nest of western capitalist money chasers known as economic liberals.
ellauri321.html on line 483: On hullua miten ohi maalin tollot kriitikot ampuvat Linklaterin kohdalla. Ei se ollut mikään koomikko, siis ei haha hauska kaatuilija ala Chapl in/Buster Keaton, tai hullu hassuttelija kuin Spede Pasanen vaan apinaelämää ymmärtävä humoristi. Eikä se ollut yhtään ilkeämpi amerikkalaisille kuin ne ansaizevat. Psykoterapeutti Maarit Kalliokin kehottaa:
ellauri321.html on line 508: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/16/THEODOSIA_01.jpg/500px-THEODOSIA_01.jpg" />
ellauri321.html on line 573: VIDEO
ellauri322.html on line 26: Tom Dick and Harry Paineella play:none">Sentimentalismia
ellauri322.html on line 28: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c9/Carolinemathildedenmark.jpg/770px-Carolinemathildedenmark.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri322.html on line 49: Donc Thomas Paine resta en France jusqu’en 1802, période pendant laquelle il critique l’ascension de Napoléon Bonaparte, qualifiant le Premier Consul de « charlatan le pl us parfait qui eût jamais existé ». Puhu vaan izestäsi niskatuskamies. Sur l’invitation du président Thomas Jefferson, il revient aux États-Unis et il y meurt en 1809, à 72 ans.
ellauri322.html on line 51: Thomas Paine est né en 1737 à Thetford, une bourgade du Norfolk en Angleterre. Son père, Joseph Pain, est quaker et sa mère, Frances Cocke Pain, anglicane. Malgré les affirmations selon lesquelles Thomas aurait changé l'orthographe de son nom de famille lors de son émigration en Amérique en 1774, il utilisait "Paine" déja en 1769, alors qu'il était encore à Lewes, dans le Sussex. Il grandit dans un milieu rural modeste et quitte l'école à l'âge de douze ans. Sa formation intellectuelle est donc celle d'un autodidacte. Grâce à cela, sa pensée simpl e et son style concis et clair ont fait de lui une arme efficace de propagande.
ellauri322.html on line 53: Il travaille quelque temps comme marchand, puis ouvre une boutique de corsets à Sandwich dans le Kent. Il épouse Mary Lambert le 27 septembre 1759 et son commerce fait faillite peu de temps après. Son épouse meurt alors qu'elle est enceinte. Il exerce ensuite pl usieurs métiers et déménage souvent (Thetford, Gantham, Alford, Diss, Kensington, Moorfields, Grampound).
ellauri322.html on line 59: Kirjassa Reflections on the Revolution in France (1790) Edmund Burke sanoo, että todellinen yhteiskunnallinen vakaus syntyy, jos kansakunnan köyhää enemmistöä hallitsee rikkaiden pl utokraattien vähemmistö, ja että vallan laillinen periminen (varallisuus, uskonnollinen, hallinto) varmistaa poliittisen vallan sopivuuden olevan yksinomaan valtakunnan eliitin hallinnassa. Ei siihen tarvi aatelisnimiä eikä hassuja hattuja, kuten jenkkilä on osoittanut.
ellauri322.html on line 61: Ihmiset syntyvät ja pysyvät aina vapaina ja tasa-arvoisina oikeuksiensa suhteen. Siviilierot voivat siis perustua vain "yleishyödyllisyyteen" (kz. ed. kpl ). Kaikkien poliittisten yhdistysten ja historian loppu on ihmisen luonnollisten ja peruuttamattomien oikeuksien säilyttäminen; ja nämä oikeudet ovat yrittämisvapaus ja omaisuuden turvallisuus eli el Zorron ja Robin Hoodin vastustus.
ellauri322.html on line 64: Il voit dans le gouvernement un mal nécessaire destiné à brider les vices humains. Mais pour un peupl e vertueux comme est le peupl e américain, bien peu des institutions importantes doivent suffire. Il pense que des institutions trop sophistiquées entraveraient la réalisation du bien public
ellauri322.html on line 82: Excess and inequality of taxation, however disguised in the means, never fail to appear in their effects. As a great mass of the community are thrown thereby into poverty and discontent, they are constantly on the brink of commotion; and deprived, as they unfortunately are, of the means of information, are easily heated to outrage. Tupl a hah.
ellauri322.html on line 83: If there is a country in the world where concord, according to common calculation, would be least expected, it is America. There the poor are not oppressed, the rich are not privileged. Industry is not mortified by the spl endid extravagance of an unruly workforce rioting at its expense. Tripl a hah.
ellauri322.html on line 85: Experience, in all ages, and in all countries, has demonstrated that it is impossible to control Nature in her distribution of mental powers. She gives them as she pl eases. Whatever is the rule by which she, apparently to us, scatters them among mankind, that rule remains a secret to man.
ellauri322.html on line 93: In contempl ating the whole of this subject, I extend my views into the department of commerce. In all my publications, where the matter would admit, I have been an advocate for commerce, because I am a friend to its effects. It is a pacific system, operating to cordialise mankind, by rendering nations, as well as individuals, useful to each other. As to the mere theoretical reformation, I have never preached it up. The most effectual process is that of improving the condition of man by means of his interest; and it is on this ground that I take my stand. If commerce were permitted to act to the universal extent it is capable, it would extirpate the system of war, and produce a revolution in the uncivilised state of governments. The invention of commerce has arisen since those governments began, and is the greatest approach towards universal civilisation that has yet been made by any means not immediately flowing from moral principl es. Whatever has a tendency to promote the civil intercourse of nations by an exchange of benefits, is a subject as worthy of philosophy as of politics.
ellauri322.html on line 95: Commerce is no other than the traffic of two individuals, multipl ied on a scale of numbers; and by the same rule that nature intended for the intercourse of two, she intended that of all. For this purpose she has distributed the materials of manufactures and commerce, in various and distant parts of a nation and of the world; and as they cannot be procured by war so cheapl y or so commodiously as by commerce, she has rendered the latter the means of extirpating the former. As the two are nearly the opposite of each other, consequently, the uncivilised state of the European governments is injurious to commerce. Every kind of destruction or embarrassment serves to lessen the quantity, and it matters but little in what part of the commercial world the reduction begins. Like blood, it cannot be taken from any of the parts, without being taken from the whole mass in circulation, and all partake of the loss. When the ability in any nation to buy is destroyed, it equally involves the seller. Could the government of England destroy the commerce of all other nations, she would most effectually ruin her own. It is possible that a nation may be the carrier for the world, but she cannot be the merchant. She cannot be the seller and buyer of her own merchandise. The ability to buy must reside out of herself; and, therefore, the prosperity of any commercial nation is regulated by the prosperity of the rest. If they are poor she cannot be rich, and her condition, be what it may, is an index of the height of the commercial tide in other nations. When, therefore, governments are at war, the attack is made upon a common stock of commerce, and the consequence is the same as if each had attacked his own.
ellauri322.html on line 127: When all the governments of Europe shall be established on the representative system, nations will become acquainted, and the animosities and prejudices fomented by the intrigue and artifice of courts, will cease. As soldiers have hitherto been treated in most countries, they might be said to be without a friend. Shunned by the citizen on an apprehension of their being enemies to liberty, and too often insulted by those who commanded them, their condition was a double oppression. But where genuine principl es of liberty pervade a peopl e, everything is restored to order; and the soldier civilly treated, returns the civility.
ellauri322.html on line 138: Konservatiivisessa reaktiossa brittiläistä radikalismia vastaan Godwinia vastaan hyökättiin, osittain hänen avioliittonsa vuoksi feministisen kirjailijan Mary Wollstonecraftin kanssa vuonna 1797 ja hänen rehellisen elämäkertansa vuoksi, kun tämä kuoli synnytyksen seurauksena. Heidän tyttärensä, joka tunnettiin myöhemmin nimellä Mary Shelley, jatkoi Frankensteinin kirjoittamista ja meni naimisiin runoilija Percy Bysshe Shelleyn kanssa. Godwin perusti toisen vaimonsa Mary Jane Clairmontin kanssa The Juvenile Libraryn, joka antoi perheen kirjoittaa omia teoksiaan lapsille (joskus käyttämällä noms de pl ume) sekä kääntää ja julkaista monia muita kirjoja, joista osa on pysyvästi merkittäviä. Godwinilla on ollut huomattava vaikutus brittiläiseen huumorikirjallisuuteen (Eric Linklater) ja muuhunkin kirjalliseen kulttuuriin.
ellauri322.html on line 193: William Godwin, Shelley’s father lived long enough to grow conservative and gradually let his radical views fall by the way-side, Mary Wollstonecraft did not have that chance, as she died, still a relatively young woman (38), from compl ications after giving birth to Mary Godwin (later Shelley).
ellauri322.html on line 226: "Pudotukset kiirehtivät sieluni uuteen heijastusten junaan. Pomppaavan virtauksen kiihkeä ryntäys tummista onteloista, jotka pilkkasivat tutkivaa silmää, sai aikaan samanlaisen toiminnan mielessäni: ajatukseni lensivät maasta taivaaseen ja kysyin itseltäni, miksi olin kahdeltuna elämään ja sen kurjuuteen? Silti myrskyisät tunteet, joita tämä ylevä esine innosti, olivat miellyttäviä; ja sitä katsellessani sieluni nousi uudella arvokkuudellaan huolensa yläpuolelle - tarttuen kuolemattomuuteen - tuntui mahdottomalta pysäyttää ajatusteni virtaa, koska aina vaihteleva, yhä sama, virtaava edessäni - ojensin. käteni iankaikkisuuteen, joka rajaa tulevan elämän ko. pimeän täpl än yli."
ellauri322.html on line 234: Edward John Wollstonecraft then gave up farming to venture upon a commercial speculation. This caused him to live for a year and a half at Queen's Row, Hoxton. His daughter Mary was then sixteen; and while at Hoxton she had her education advanced by the friendly care of a deformed clergyman Mr. Clare who lived next door, and stayed so much at home that his one pair of shoes had lasted him for fourteen years. But Mary Wollstonecraft's chief friend at this time was an accompl ished girl only two years older than herself, who maintained her father, mother, and family by skill in drawing. Her name was Frances Blood, and she especially, by her exampl e and direct instruction, drew out her "young friend's" drawers.
ellauri322.html on line 244: Mary Wollstonecraft left Lisbon for England late in December, 1785. When she came back she found Fanny's poor parents anxious to go back to Ireland ; and as she had been often told that she could earn by writing, she wrote a pamphlet of 162 small pages" Thoughts on the Education of Daughters " and got ten pounds for it. This she gave to hel- friend's parents to enable them to go back to their kindred. In all she did there is clear evidence of an ardent, generous, impulsive nature. One day her friend Fanny Blood had repined at the unhappy surroundings in the home she was maintaining for her father and mother, and longed for a little home of her own to do her work in. Her friend quietly found rooms, got furniture together, and told her that her little home was ready ; she had only to walk into it. Then it seemed strange to Mary Wollstonecraft that Fanny Blood was withheld by thoughts that had not been uppermost in the mood of compl aint. She thought her friend irresolute, where she had herself been generously rash. Her end would have been happier had she been helped, as many are, by that calm influence of home in which some knowledge of the world passes from father and mother to son and daughter, without visible teaching and preaching, in easiest companionship of young and old from day to day.
ellauri322.html on line 250: With all this hard work she lived as sparely as she could, that she might help her family. She supported her father. That she might enable her sisters to earn their living as teachers, she sent one of them to Paris, and maintained her there for two years ; the other she pl aced in a school near London as parlour-boarder until she was admitted into it as a paid teacher. She pl aced one brother at Woolwich to qualify for the Navy, and he obtained a lieutenant's commission. For another brother, articled to an attorney whom he did not like, she obtained a transfer of dentures; and when it became clear that his quarrel was more with law than with the lawyers, she pl aced him with a farmer before fitting him out for emigration to America. She then sent him, so well prepared for his work there that he prospered well.
ellauri322.html on line 254: To Burke's attack on the French Revolution Mary Wollstonecraft wrote an Answer one of many answers provoked by it that attracted much attention. This was followed by her "Vindication of the Rights of Woman," while the air was full of declamation on the "Rights of Man." The claims made in this little book were in advance of the opinion of that day, but they are claims that have in our day been conceded. They are certainly not revolutionary in the opinion of the world tbat has become a hundred years older since the book was written (1792). No, more like 230 years, pl us 1.
ellauri322.html on line 258: Four months after she had gone to Paris, Mary Wollstonecraft met at the house of a merchant, with whose wife she had become intimate, an American named Gilbert Imlay. He won her affections. That was in April, 1793. He had no means, and she had home embarrassments, for which she was unwilling that he should become in any way responsible. A part of the new dream in some minds then was of a love too pure to need or bear the bondage of authority. The mere forced union of marriage ties impl ied, it was said, a distrust of fidelity. When Gilbert Imlay would have married Mary Wollstonecraft, she herself refused to bind him ; she would keep him legally exempt from her responsibilities towards the father, sisters, brothers, whom she was supporting. She took his name and called herself his wife, when the French Convention, indignant at the conduct pf the British Government, issued a decree
ellauri322.html on line 260: from the effects of which she would escape as the wife of a citizen of the United States. But she did not marry. She witnessed many of the horrors that came of the loosened passions of an untaught populace. A child was born to her a girl whom she named after the dead friend of her own girlhood. And then she found that she had leant upon a reed. She was neglected; and was at last forsaken. Having sent her to London, Imlay there visited her, to expl ain himself away. She resolved on suicide, and in dissuading her from that he gave her hope again. He needed somebody who had good judgment, and who cared for his interests, to represent him in some business affairs in Norway. She undertook to act for him, and set out on the voyage only a week after she had determined to destroy herself.
ellauri322.html on line 262: The interest of this book which describes her travel is quickened by a knowledge of the heart-sorrow that underlies it all. Gilbert Imlay had promised to meet her upon her return, and go with her to Switzerland. But the letters she had from him in Sweden and Norway were cold, and she came back to find that she was wholly forsaken for an actress from a strolling company of pl ayers. Then she went up the river to drown herself. She paced the road at Putney on an October night, in 1795, in heavy rain, until her clothes were drenched, that she might sink more surely, and then threw herself from the top of Putney Bridge.
ellauri322.html on line 264: She was rescued, again, and lived on with deadened spirit. In 1796 these "Letters from Sweden and Norway " were published. Early in 1797 she was married to William Godwin. On the 10th of September in the same year, at the ago of thirty-eight, Mary Wollstonecraft Godwin died, after the birth of the daughter who lived to become the wife of Shelley and write a blockbuster bestseller. The mother also would have lived, if a womanly feeling, in itself to be respected, had not led her also to unwise departure from the customs of the world. Peace be to her memory. None but kind thoughts can dwell upon the life of this too faithful discipl e of Rousseau (except for the feminismim).
ellauri322.html on line 267: Eli minkäläisiä vaikutelmia sai Himmu pohjoismaista? No heti Jööteporissa otti päähän että luozit oli kruununvirkamiehiä eikä lähteneet koiranilmaan soutamaan Himmua rantaan naisen oikusta. Toisin briteissä ja Norjassa, jossa luozit on yxityisyrittäjiä ja ihan kilpailevat surkeasta luozimaxusta. Two guineas tempted the sailors to risk the captains displ easure. Just tollasia korruptoituneita paskoja anglosaxit on.
ellauri322.html on line 278: Tuppukylissä ollaan vieraanvaraisia koska siellä ei ole parempaakaan tekemistä. Rahvas on hövelimpää Marylle kuin ökykauppiaat. Porukat ahmivat jatkuvasti pöperöitä joissa on Marysta liikaa mausteita, ja sivupöydällä vielä smörgåsbordia ja paloviinaa. Loppupäässä kirjettä on Marylla aina romanttista luontopl äjäystä. Adjö!
ellauri322.html on line 293: Dearly beloved Roger, The scripture moveth us in sundry pl aces. This is a bawdy parody of The Book of common prayer. No ei, se on mitä Swift sanoi kuin sen uudessa seurakunnassa ei kukaan ilmestynyt saarnankuuloon paizi unilukkari.
ellauri322.html on line 337: The increasing population of the earth must necessarily tend to its improvement, as the means of existence are multipl ied by invention. You have probably made similar reflections in America, where the face of the country, I suppose, resembles the wilds of Norway.
ellauri322.html on line 358: The view of this wild coast, as we sailed along it, afforded me a continual subject for meditation. I anticipated the future improvement of the world, and observed how much man has still to do to obtain of the earth all it could yield. I even carried my speculations so far as to advance a million or two of years (!) to the moment when the earth would perhaps be so perfectly cultivated, and so compl etely peopl ed, as to render it necessary to inhabit every spot, yes, even these bleak shores. Imagination went still farther, and pictured the state of man when the earth could no longer support him. Whither was he to flee from universal famine ? Sitten se kezu söi ize izensä ja sixi ei enää ole kezuja.
ellauri322.html on line 367: Here I met with an intelligent literary man, who was anxious to gather information from me relative to the past and present situation of France. The newspapers printed at Copenhagen, as well as those in England, give the most exaggerated accounts of their atrocities and distresses, but the former without any apparent comments or inferences. Still the Norwegians, though more connected with the English, speaking their language and copying their manners, wish well to the Republican cause, and follow with the most lively interest the successes of the French arms. So determined were they, in fact, to excuse everything, disgracing the struggle of freedom, by admitting the tyrant’s pl ea, necessity, that I could hardly persuade them that Robespierre was a monster. Laureenska myöntää että kaikki ukrainalaiset eivät pidä Zelenskystä.
ellauri322.html on line 369: You may think me too severe on commerce, but from the manner it is at present carried on little can be advanced in favour of a pursuit that wears out the most sacred principl es of humanity and rectitude. What is speculation but a species of gambling, I might have said fraud, in which address generally gains the prize?
ellauri322.html on line 373: You will ask, perhaps, why I wished to go farther northward. Why? not only because the country, from all I can gather, is most romantic, abounding in forests and lakes, and the air pure, but I have heard much of the intelligence of the inhabitants, substantial farmers, who have none of that cunning to contaminate their simpl icity, which displ eased me so much in the conduct of the peopl e on the sea coast. A man who has been detected in any dishonest act can no longer live among them. He is universally shunned, and shame becomes the severest punishment.
ellauri322.html on line 375: Such a contempt have they, in fact, for every species of fraud, that they will not allow the peopl e on the western coast to be their countrymen; so much do they despise the arts for which those traders who live on the rocks are notorious. Eikä Mary tarkoita vain graffitia.
ellauri322.html on line 385: Odelsretten har medvirket til å holde eiendommer på landet i samme families eie, men har også medvirket til mange familiefeider gjennom tidene. Regelen om bopl ikt, som ble innført i 1975, har også ført til alvorlige problemer for mange. I de siste årene har det vært sterke røster for å oppheve odelsretten. Blant annet gjorde tidligere landbruksminister Lars Sponheim det klart at han ville vurdere en opphevelse av odelsloven. En oppheving av odelsretten vil kreve en endring av grunnloven, og således kreve 2/3 flertall i Stortinget for å bli vedtatt.
ellauri322.html on line 391: Takasin matkalla Norjasta on ruåzalaiset Uddevallassa taas täys sikoja. I do not now wonder that the girls lose their fine compl exions at such an early age, or that love here is merely an appetite to fulfil the main design of Nature, never enlivened by either affection or sentiment.
ellauri322.html on line 397: The Swedes are in general attached to their families, yet a divorce may be obtained by either party on proving the infidelity of the other or acknowledging it themselves. The women do not often recur to this equal privilege, for they either retaliate on their husbands by following their own devices or sink into the merest domestic drudges, worn down by tyranny to servile submission. Do not term me severe if I add, that after youth is flown the husband becomes a sot, and the wife amuses herself by scolding her servants. In fact, what is to be expected in any country where taste and cultivation of mind do not suppl y the pl ace of youthful beauty and animal spirits?
ellauri322.html on line 413: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c9/Carolinemathildedenmark.jpg/770px-Carolinemathildedenmark.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri322.html on line 419: What a farce is life. This effigy of majesty is allowed to burn down to the socket, whilst the hapl ess Matilda was hurried into an untimely grave.
ellauri322.html on line 425: Tanskixet kazelee julkista teloitusta viihteenä. Kas kun niillä ei ole telkkaria rikä suoratoistoa. Jeg er mere og mere overbevist om, at den samme karakterenergi, der gør en mand til en dristig skurk, ville have gjort ham nyttig for samfundet, hvis samfundet havde været mere velorganiseret. Når et stærkt sind ikke discipl ineres ved kultivering, er det en følelse af uretfærdighed, der gør det uretfærdigt. Meget pl ausibelt. Mary ei pidä empirismistä.
ellauri322.html on line 440: A story is told here of the King’s formerly making a dog counsellor of state, because when the dog, accustomed to eat at the royal table, snatched a piece of meat off an old officer’s pl ate, the geezer reproved him jocosely, saying that he, monsieur le chien, had not the privilege of dining with his majesty, a privilege annexed to this distinction.
ellauri322.html on line 450: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1a/Ugolino_Carpeaux_Petit_Palais_PPSO1573.jpg/1280px-Ugolino_Carpeaux_Petit_Palais_PPSO1573.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri322.html on line 460: You know that I have always been an enemy to what is termed charity, because timid bigots, endeavouring thus to cover their sins, do violence to justice, till, acting the demigod, they forget that they are men. And there are others who do not even think of laying up a treasure in heaven, whose benevolence is merely tyranny in disguise; they assist the most worthless, because the most servile, and term them helpl ess only in proportion to their fawning.
ellauri322.html on line 462: Itzehoe (gesprochen [ɪtsəˈhoː] (anhörenⓘ/?) mit Dehnungs-e, pl attdeutsch: Itzhoe) ist eine Mittelstadt im Südwesten Schleswig-Holsteins beiderseits der Stör. Sie ist die Kreisstadt des Kreises Steinburg und zählt zu den ältesten Städten Holsteins.
ellauri322.html on line 485: ploads/posts/2023-03/1679973290_papik-pro-p-psikhologizm-v-zhivopisi-39.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri322.html on line 486: pload/629/7ea06afc0ba9ec8921cb148d639d15c9.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri323.html on line 27: Zuleika Dobson play:none">Eetuilua
ellauri323.html on line 29: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/a/a9/Zuleika-dobson.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri323.html on line 60: Victoria Mary Sackville-West was the only child of Lionel Edward, third Baron of Sackville, and Victoria Josepha Dolores Catalina Sackville-West, his first cousin and the illegitimate daughter of the dipl omat Sir Lionel Sackville-West. She was educated privately. As a child she started to write poetry, writing her first ballads at the age of 11. "I don't remember either my father or my mother very vividly at that time, except that Dada used to take me for terribly long walks and talk to me about science, principally Darwin, and I liked him a great deal better than mother, of whose quick temper I was frightened." (from Portrait of a Marriage by Nigel Nicolson, 1973) Vita's mother considered her ugly - she was bony, she had long legs, straight hair, and she wanted to be as boyish as possible.
ellauri323.html on line 74: Sebastian The Duke was open-handed, as he could well afford to be; money was a thing about which he never needed to think. There had always been pl enty of money at Chevron, and there still was, even with the income-tax raised from 11d. to 1/- in the pound; that abundance was another of the things which had never changed and which had every appearance of being unchangeable. It was taken for granted, but Sebastian saw to it that his tenants benefited as well as himself. "An ideel landlord-wish there were more like him," they said, forgetting that there were, in fact, many like him; many who, in their unobtrusive way, elected to share out their fortune, not entirely to their own advantage-quiet English squires, who, less favoured than Sebastian, were yet imbued with the same spirit, and traditionally gave their time and a good proportion of their possessions as a matter of course to those dependent upon them. A voluntary system, voluntary in that it depended upon the temperament of the squire; still, a system which possessed a certain pl easant dignity denied to the systems of a more compulsory sort. But did it, Sebastian reflected, sitting with his pen poised above his cheque-book, carry with it a disagreeable odour of charity? He thought not; for he knew that he derived as much satisfaction from the idea that Bassett would no longer endure a leaking roof as Bassett could possibly derive, next winter, from the fact that his roof no longer leaked. He would certainly go over and talk to the man Bassett.
ellauri323.html on line 76: Hizi tää on ihan samaa potaskaa kuin "Genital" Robinsin saxankielinen amerikkaoligarkkieepos Karvinen albumissa 309 . Plus ca change, pl us c'est la meme chose. Oligarkit muhoilevat rahalaareissaan aina samoin hyväntekeväisin ajatuxin, teoin ja sanoin. Herttuattaren vieraat ovat permanentti piirre maailmassa, ne jatkavat snobbailuaan vaikka rievuissa, ovat olevinaan muita parempia, sulkevat seurastaan rotinkaiset joilla ei ole edes riepuja, munasilteen kulkijat.
ellauri323.html on line 119: Zuleika was not strictly beautiful. Her eyes were a trifle large, and their lashes longer than they need have been. An anarchy of small curls was her chevelure, a dark upl and of misrule, every hair asserting its rights over a not discreditable brow. For the rest, her features were not at all original. They seemed to have been derived rather from a gallimaufry of familiar models. From Madame la Marquise de Saint-Ouen came the shapely tilt of the nose. The mouth was a mere repl ica of Cupid’s bow, lacquered scarlet and strung with the littlest pearls. No appl e-tree, no wall of peaches, had not been robbed, nor any Tyrian rose-garden, for the glory of Miss Dobson’s cheeks. Her neck was imitation-marble. Her hands and feet were of very mean proportions. She had no waist to speak of.
ellauri323.html on line 122: Came that Sunday night, notanda candidissimo calculo! when she received certain guttural compl iments which made absolute her vogue and enabled her to command, thenceforth, whatever terms she asked for.
ellauri323.html on line 129: Zuleika was the smiling target of all snap-shooters, and all the snap-shots were snapped up by the press and reproduced with annotations: Zuleika Dobson walking on Broadway in the sables gifted her by Grand Duke Salamander—she says “You can bounce blizzards in them”; Zuleika Dobson yawning over a love-letter from millionaire Edelweiss; relishing a cup of clam-broth—she says “They don’t use clams out there”; ordering her maid to fix her a warm bath; finding a spl it in the gloves she has just drawn on before starting for the musicale given in her honour by Mrs. Suetonius X. Meistersinger, the most exclusive woman in New York; chatting at the telephone to Miss Camille Van Spook, the best-born girl in New York; laughing over the recollection of a compl iment made her by George Abimelech Post, the best-groomed man in New York; meditating a new trick; admonishing a waiter who has upset a cocktail over her skirt; having herself manicured; drinking tea in bed. Thus was Zuleika enabled daily to be, as one might say, a spectator of her own wonderful life. On her departure from New York, the papers spoke no more than the truth when they said she had had “a lovely time.”
ellauri323.html on line 137: He knew well, however, that women care little for a man’s appearance, and that what they seek in a man is strength of character, and rank, and wealth. Are you fond of horses? In my stables of pine-wood and pl ated-silver seventy are installed. Not all of them together could vie in power with one of the meanest of my motor-cars.”
ellauri323.html on line 148: “Then what,” cried the Duke, standing over her, “what is your repl y?”
ellauri323.html on line 149: Said Zuleika, looking up at him, “My repl y is that I think you are an awful snob.”
ellauri323.html on line 162: Filistealaiset repesivät ja aloittivat ihmistulvan Gazassa. Ilkeät koukkunokat reagoivat heti tupl a väkivallalla. Hamas on terrorijärjestö EU-maiden kirjoissa. Sevveran niitä vielä hävettää holokaustin paistikkaat. Sana terrori on aivan pelleä. Puhdasta niskan päällä olevien konnankoukkua.
ellauri323.html on line 176: Filistealaisten Jom Kippurin 50-vuotisjuhla-atakki oli "brazen", koska siinä kuoli 200 moosexenuskoista. Kostopommituxissa on kuollut tähän mennessä 232 santanekrua. Biden on antanut univocal supporttia Israelille. "Israel has the right to defend itself and its peopl e, full stop.” "Israel ‘will act in any way necessary’ to protect citizens," ambassador tells UN Security Council. Like turn off power from Gaza. Nighty night carpet pilots! Diaper heads! Camel cowboys! Dune niggers! (Lähde )
ellauri323.html on line 178: ploads/2023/10/INTERACTIVE-Gaza-human-toll-1696686056.png?w=770&resize=770%2C770&quality=80" />
ellauri323.html on line 180: Member of the Hadash Party and the Israeli Knesset Ofer Cassif says while the killing of civilians on both sides was condemnable, it was Israel’s occupation of Palestinian territories, and the actions of the Netanyahu-led government, that was responsible for the deaths of Israelis and Palestinians. Cassif also criticised the US government, saying that if it had pressed Israel to move towards a peaceful political solution and to end the occupation, events such as today’s would not have happened. Eurowesterners are making very similar statements and language that you have heard from US President Joe Biden. They are firmly blaming Hamas for this attack. Biden pl edges ‘all appropriate means of support’ to Israel. The US provides $3.8bn in unconditional military aid to Zion annually. Hadash is a left-wing party that supports a socialistic economy and workers' rights. It emphasizes Jewish-Arab cooperation, and its leaders were among the first to support a two-state solution. Its voters are principally middle class and secular Arabs, many from the north and Christian communities.
ellauri323.html on line 190: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/4f/Marianne_Moore_1948_hires.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri323.html on line 191: plzPPRF1ubcbin_500.png" height="300px" />
ellauri324.html on line 26: ROISTO- VALTIO play:none">Ryöstökapitalismia
ellauri324.html on line 28: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/9/9b/Roistovaltio.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri324.html on line 32: VIDEO
ellauri324.html on line 68: At around 9:30 am. I gave the order to Secdef to execute the war pl an for Operation Iraqi Freedom. In spite of the fact that I had decided a few months ago to use force, if need be, to liberate Iraq and rid the country of Weapons of Mass Destruction (money and oil), the decision was an emotional one. I know I have taken the right action and do pray few will lose life. Iraq will be free, the world will be safer. The emotion of the moment has passed and now I wait word on the covert action that is taking pl ace.
ellauri324.html on line 122: Saxalainen kierrätetty politiikan oppikirja päättyy vuoteen 2000, eli 9/11 puuttuu siitä vielä, pl us länkkärien kaikki ketkuilut siitä lähtien. Koko Irakin lyttyyn lyönti kauppatornien kostotoimenpiteenä toimi mainiona esimerkkinä koukkunokkien Gaza-genosiidille. Mitä isot edellä, sitä pienet perässä.
ellauri324.html on line 168: Ehkä maailman paras kulttileffa isolta kankaalta, väittää mainospl ärä. Se on totaalisen n.h., joten lienee korkea aika ottaa selvää siitä.
ellauri324.html on line 175: On a more serious note, we often need to brag or to “toot our own horn” because no one else would do it. Peopl e around us are just too busy, or too self-absorbed, to notice or to remember to support and to praise.
ellauri324.html on line 181: ple-brag/">Lähde
ellauri324.html on line 183: When someone brags, they highlight their positive traits, qualities, or accompl ishments. This kind of self-promotion is usually an attempt to impress other peopl e. Bragging can be subtle or obvious. Peopl e who brag in obvious ways might try too hard to be liked or exaggerate certain traits or stories in an attempt to seem cool, funny, or important. Peopl e who are more subtle may hide their bragging with humor, sarcasm, or self-deprecating remarks.
ellauri324.html on line 184: Below are 10 different reasons why peopl e brag.
ellauri324.html on line 192: They have a superiority or inferiority compl ex
ellauri324.html on line 193: They put peopl e down to boost themselves up
ellauri324.html on line 197: How to respond to peopl e who brag? Here are some of the best counterpl ays:
ellauri324.html on line 218: I live in a wealthy suburb on the outskirts of Silicon Valley in California; trees, flowers, birds, mostly nice neighbors of diverse backgrounds. On the surface, it seems a wonderful pl ace to live, and in many respects, it is, however, if I look out my front window, I see this:
ellauri324.html on line 220: The electricity is distributed via overhead lines, due to an underinvestment in infrastructure: last month, I lost power for over 36 hours because it got a little windy (the world headquarters of Appl e, Facebook, and Google are within a ten mile radius of my pl ace). When I ride my bike to the local supermarket this evening, I will have to be careful not to slip on a large and growing patch of gravel on a road that hasn’t been repaired for many years: this, in one of the wealthiest parts of the wealthiest country in the world.
ellauri324.html on line 222: The above is a map of the SF Bay area, a densely populated part of California with an almost continuous ring of urban development. As you would expect, the traffic can be pretty bad, so you might expect that there would be a single circular light rail system linking the many cities around the bay; there is not: if I want to travel from my pl ace to Fremont by rail alone, the quickest way with the most frequent service is via San Francisco. US infrastructure is truly abysmal.
ellauri324.html on line 226: The infrastructure is just one symptom of America’s degradation: the streets of major cities like San Francisco and Los Angeles are filling up with homeless drug addicts, leaving the sidewalks littered with tents, needles, and human waste. Next to nothing is done for these peopl e because it is seen as “their problem” that they are mentally ill, and lack access to mental health services and affordable housing. The irony is that there are so many of these peopl e now that they have become everyone’s problem. Retailers in downtown SF are closing down their stores because the conditions in the streets are keeping paying customers away, whilst the cops barely regard shopl ifting as a crime.
ellauri324.html on line 232: Living in my little enclave, with its fragile electricity suppl y, and crumbling roads, it’s easy for my neighbors and I to think that things aren’t so bad, but in under an hour, I can travel to SF and see scenes exactly like the one in the last photo. Whilst peopl e are constantly harping on about whether the Democrats or the Republicans are better or worse than each other, they are ignoring the fact that both parties have done nothing to seriously address the severe decay that is undeniably afflicting America’s social and physical fabric.
ellauri324.html on line 234: Edit: My apologies to those who may have wished to leave reasonable and informed comments; I got tired of being notified of comments that were rude and stupid, and there are already pl enty of comments in the thread that disagree with my point of view.
ellauri324.html on line 236: Edit 2 : There appears to be evidence that it was uninsulated overhead powerlines, such as the ones in my photo, which led to the fires in Maui, which killed hundreds of peopl e.
ellauri324.html on line 240: If the author of the question long one is wealthy and well traveled he would know that Europe and Asia had many technological advances long before USA did or will ever have such as TGV or bullet trains for exampl e. After spending time in Europe and Asia it was decades later I saw many of these advances here to buy or experience. Japanese cars nearly sunk USA automakers. Why didn’t the corp heads heed anything. TGV in France and Japan and other nations is unrivaled and we have not even one such train here. Tankless water heaters, available in Asia and Europe decades before here. Roads and other infrastructure also superior. My research shows that Americans were so busy creating totalitarian policies like redlining and private cars and pools and expressways removed entire neighborhoods of blacks to create all white suburbs that they were unconcerned with advances that would unite peopl e. Sure everywhere are class societies but it’s a whole different level here. The homeless situation is opening eyes in this country and many things are borne out of a highly segregated society where it’s expensive to live in certain cities and suburbs and the rest be damned. Obviously California has destroyed itself from within. The liberals there and other states are the most class and race conscious than any other peopl e on earth. This blind spot is like a beacon. A prism that breaks down social order. The wealthy libs have to accept their roles in American destruction. It will get worse long before it improves. [Redlining is an illegal practice in which lenders avoid providing credit services to individuals living in or seeking to live in, communities of color because of the race, color, or national origin of the residents in those communities.]
ellauri324.html on line 242: Repl y:
ellauri324.html on line 244: Eventually the fake money in the stock exchange thats being backed by the one world peopl e will eventually burst and when it does their will be a solution. A new digital currency will slowly be on the rise as the new and “logical” solution to the economic disaster. Since our currency is paper and is no longer backed by gold it is easy to just switch to digital money. This new idea (which has been pl anned for years) will start to make its way on your smart phones and new trendy devices like wrist bands and and tech glasses. This will hold your driving traveling financial health and social information on it and money and credit cards will slowly be pushed out to the point of being obsolete and a thing of the past. Crime will arise and these trendy devices will get hacked stolen and destroyed. their will be a type of digital fraud that will be almost impossible to deal with until a “new solution arrises”.
ellauri324.html on line 246: There will then be a chip that can do everything i mentioned before however this will be impl anted within you and the idea will be that its safe secure trendy and it makes you like a GOD! celebrities professors of high institutions law enforcement CEOS etc will all have this making it more intriguing to the masses. In a short amount of time this will edge out physical currency however peopl e will have an option. When enough peopl e have accepted this IT WILL BECOME MANDATORY YOU WILL NOT BE ABLE TO BUY OR SELL, TRAVEL OR WORK, TAKE THE BUS THE TRAIN EAT AT RESTAURANTS OR EVEN APPLY TO SCHOOLS OR WORK JOBS. Within your schools and hospitals and workpl aces your bosses and teachers will make this mandatory and you will have to compl y before you end up in jail or confinement. At this point you will have to either leave and take up whatever suppl ies you have or join peopl e who are like minded in not conforming to the technological abomination. Peopl e at this time will be very sick and peopl e in America have been getting more sick with food pollution stress fatigue etc they will rely on the system for their medication with heart and organ failures depression and psychosis tumors and boils that will seem to have no cure. Peopl e who rely on the system will have a harder time withdrawing from it. Addictions food intolerances vaccine epidemics and malnutrition exhaustion fatigue depression and violence will be on the rise to a point where they could and want to call for martial law.
ellauri324.html on line 248: After that point you better be off the radar and out of the country to a safe pl ace where God and his angels can protect you. YOU MAY MOCK GOD AND LAUGH AT HIM NOW BUT WHEN THIS HAPPENS AND YOU FIND YOURSELF ON THE WAY TO A FEMA CAMP A “QUARANTINED HOSPITAL FACILITY” OR FLAT OUT JAIL YOU WILL START TO BREAK DOWN IN UTTER FEAR AND SADNESS AND YOU WILL LOOK TO THE GOD OF THE BIBLE WHICH YOU PAID NO ATTENTION TO BUT ANY INFORMATION OR BIBLE FOR THAT MATTER WILL BE NO LONGER FOUND IT WILL BE DEEMED A BOOK FILLED WITH EVIL AND LIES THAT IS IGNORANT AND SO PEOPLE WILL VOTE OUT OF THEIR OWN FREE WILL TO KICK GOD OUT OF THE COUNTRY OUT OF SCHOOLS CHURCHES PLACES OF WORK AND HOMES. BY THIS TIME YOU COULD BE SEPARATED FROM YOUR FAMILY AND THROWN IN PRISON FOR SPEAKING ABOUT JESUS AND HIS TRUTH. YOU WILL BE SCARED FOR YOUR LIFE AND HOPING TO SAVE IT YOU WILL LOSE IT BECAUSE YOU HAD ALL THIS TIME TO PREPARE AND WAKE UP TO WHAT WAS HAPPENING. THE CHILDREN OF GOD WILL ALREADY BE SAFE AND FAR FROM HARM UNDER THE SHADOW OF THE ALMIGHTY. THE PEOPLE THAT ARE LEFT WILL BE THE ONES THAT EITHER DIDNT BELIEVE, MOCKED GOD AND THOUGHT TO GET AWAY WITH IT OR SIDED WITH EVIL THINKING THEY WOULD GAIN PARADISE AND UNTOLD IMMORTALITY. THIS IS OUR FUTURE DEAR CHILDREN THAT WE ARE ACCEPTING WITH OPEN ARMS THE AGENDA THAT IS BEING CARRIED OUT FOR NOT JUST AMERICA BUT FOR THE WORLD. WE NEED TO PUT A STOP TO THIS BEFORE ITS TOO LATE! GOD CARES FOR EACH AND EVERY ONE OF YOU AND DOES NOT WANT ANY SOUL TO BE LOST TO HIM BUT WE HAVE BEEN GIVEN FREE WILL AND WITH THAT WE CAN SEAL OUR FATE FOR ETERNITY IN PARADISE OR IN THE LOST PIT. TIME IS RUNNING OUT AND THIS IS THE REASON FOR SUCH AN INCREASE OF EVIL ON THE EARTH. THE TIME GROWS SHORTER AND SO THE AGENDA HAS TO BE CARRIED OUT WITH MUCH HASTE TO BEGUIL AS MANY SOULS AS POSSIBLE BEFORE JUDGEMENT. GOD LOVES YOU ALL AS A FATHER HIS CHILDREN AND IF YOU TURN TO HIM HE WILL PROTECT YOU AND FIGHT FOR YOU AGAINST THE WICKEDNESS THAT IS ALL AROUND YOU BUT YOU NEED TO ACCEPT JESUS AS THE CHRIST FOR SALVATION!!! REJOICE AND BE NOT AFRAID YOU HAVE A LOVING FATHER IN HEAVEN.
ellauri324.html on line 250: [The FEMA camps conspiracy theory is a belief, particularly within the American Patriot movement, that the United States Federal Emergency Management Agency (FEMA) is pl anning to imprison US citizens in concentration camps, following the imposition of martial law in the United States after a major disaster or crisis. The US government previously interned US citizens in concentration camps during WWII and developed, but did not impl ement, contingency pl ans for mass internment of US citizens in the 1980s.]
ellauri324.html on line 261: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/40/President_Ronald_Reagan_meets_with_aides_on_Iran-Contra.jpg/480px-President_Ronald_Reagan_meets_with_aides_on_Iran-Contra.jpg" />
ellauri324.html on line 279: Tri Tal Pavel israelilaisesta terrorisminvastaisesta instituutista (ICT) sanoi pöyristyneenä, että Hamas käyttää verkkosivustojaan vertaillakseen Israelia ja natsi-Saksaa ja esittää Israelin tuhoavana, sortavana hallintona, vaikka se oikeasti pelkää vain Hamasin raketteja satavan Tel Aviviin (ent. Jaffa). Plus ça change, pl us c'est la même chôse.
ellauri324.html on line 285: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/58/OsirakLocation.gif" />
ellauri324.html on line 292: Peopl e find some Reagan to believe.
ellauri324.html on line 342: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/38/Th%C3%ADch_Qu%E1%BA%A3ng_%C4%90%E1%BB%A9c_self-immolation.jpg/600px-Th%C3%ADch_Qu%E1%BA%A3ng_%C4%90%E1%BB%A9c_self-immolation.jpg" />
ellauri324.html on line 361: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5b/Corpse_of_Ng%C3%B4_%C4%90%C3%ACnh_Di%E1%BB%87m_in_the_1963_coup.jpg/400px-Corpse_of_Ng%C3%B4_%C4%90%C3%ACnh_Di%E1%BB%87m_in_the_1963_coup.jpg" />
ellauri324.html on line 388: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cc/Tet1968.jpg/480px-Tet1968.jpg" />
ellauri324.html on line 393: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8c/Saigon_Execution.jpg/440px-Saigon_Execution.jpg" />
ellauri324.html on line 407: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c0/RIAN_archive_67318_Soviet_sappers.jpg/400px-RIAN_archive_67318_Soviet_sappers.jpg" />
ellauri324.html on line 410: We should define the term pioneer. A pioneer is someone who is the first to do something, or who expl ores new areas or fields. In other words, a pioneer is a trailblazer who sets the stage for others to follow. On the other hand, a sapper is someone who is involved in military engineering, specifically in the construction and destruction of fortifications. A sapper is responsible for creating and destroying obstacles, such as bridges and buildings, in order to facilitate military operations.
ellauri324.html on line 422: get off the pl ane, you feel like something’s off. There’s
ellauri324.html on line 425: rotten-to-the-core being frantically spl attered with
ellauri324.html on line 427: pl ays. It’s like living inside a Hollywood movie - that
ellauri324.html on line 439: surrounded by actors, all pl aying a part, and all working
ellauri324.html on line 447: at under very specific conditions - from a pre-pl anned
ellauri324.html on line 449: long as you suspend disbelief, and pl ay by the rules, but
ellauri324.html on line 470: to be sorted out! Peopl e seem to be judged by how rich
ellauri324.html on line 471: they are, richer peopl e receive better service. Probably
ellauri324.html on line 476: that shocked me when I came to the US: the compl ete lack
ellauri324.html on line 481: way police officers and other other uniformed peopl e
ellauri324.html on line 540: installations on surface level. Simpl y not what I had
ellauri324.html on line 542: childhood dreams. Enormous amounts of homeless peopl e on
ellauri324.html on line 547: side. Peopl e in bars can be fantastically noisy. Americans shout. One time
ellauri324.html on line 550: weren’t enough peopl e to warrant that level of noise,
ellauri324.html on line 569: unpl easant associations with the Third Reich, the last
ellauri324.html on line 588: Restaurants pay their empl oyees a living wage, and
ellauri324.html on line 593: US. The compl ete lack of maintenace for the infrastructure. I
ellauri324.html on line 598: The way police officers and other other uniformed peopl e behaved. It already started on the airport at border security, all of the guys in uniform acted like they were the most important person in the world and we were just measly worms. Come on, I know you have a job to do, but why can’t you just try to be polite? If Dutch police officers would behave like that, they would be considered unfit for the job.
ellauri324.html on line 600: Enormous amounts of homeless peopl e on the streets. That
ellauri324.html on line 604: to some minor surprises on my side. Peopl e in bars can be
ellauri324.html on line 607: came from. There just weren’t enough peopl e to warrant
ellauri324.html on line 609: That was also coupl ed with a level of self-marketing
ellauri324.html on line 610: (showing off) I simpl y was not used to ;-)
ellauri324.html on line 615: are typically modern, clean and very friendly pl aces.
ellauri324.html on line 617: the US they can be worn-down pl aces where it seems to be
ellauri324.html on line 637: unpl easant associations with the Third Reich, the last
ellauri324.html on line 642: me after arriving back in the US to compl ain about the
ellauri324.html on line 691: peopl e a year with their opioids without ANY
ellauri324.html on line 705: national holidays that empl oyers MUST pay you for - ZERO!
ellauri324.html on line 707: ZERO! Homeless peopl e all over the pl ace, seemingly
ellauri324.html on line 716: cops shoot peopl e willy-nilly because they are terrified
ellauri324.html on line 717: ALL the time. Normal peopl e would immediately recognize
ellauri324.html on line 725: is co compl etely FUCKED UP that it actually decided that
ellauri324.html on line 726: “corporations” were “peopl e,” so they could contribute to
ellauri324.html on line 732: It is compl etely INSANE here. At first I
ellauri324.html on line 734: horror and with pity for the American peopl e, half of
ellauri324.html on line 769: years, if not decades, before. Some exampl es: Cheques:
ellauri324.html on line 776: of license pl ates and payment machines. Power
ellauri324.html on line 783: poverty we saw at many pl aces in the U.S. (some regions
ellauri324.html on line 789: Peopl e living in corrugated iron huts, unpaved roads,
ellauri324.html on line 790: peopl e in very poor condition…
ellauri324.html on line 798: We had expected to see a few obese peopl e in the U.S. But
ellauri324.html on line 799: the numbers of obese peopl e and the degree of obesity is
ellauri324.html on line 801: peopl e get so fat? Well, nutrition, of course. Once we stayed in a motel with compl imentary breakfast. Each single breakfast item was sugary: juice, danish, donuts, muffins, sweetened yoghurt, even a “hotcake”, composed of egg, bacon, cheese and pancakes with fake mapl e syrup. Not a single item without sugar!
ellauri324.html on line 811: USA har omkring 2 500 soldater i Irak och 900 i Syrien, "som del av den internationella koalitionen" som funnit på pl ats sedan 2014 för att "bland annat" bekämpa terrorrörelsen ISIS. Washington och Bagdad meddelade i fredags att den "internationella koalitionen" ska avvecklas inom ett år. Uskokoon ken tahtoo.
ellauri324.html on line 814: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ad/No_Hipsters%21.jpg/400px-No_Hipsters%21.jpg" />
ellauri324.html on line 831: Is Sweden compl etely ruined by socialism?
ellauri324.html on line 833: Yes it is broken beyond belief. It has a huge homeless population. It has peopl e working for such low wages they need to work 3 jobs without a decent welfare and food suppl ement program. It has peopl e begging for donations so they can get medical care in a broken system. It has school teachers and other peopl e working in college educated jobs living in tents and cars because they cant afford to rent or own a home. The highways around their major cities either go into gridlock or just heat up the pl anet uselessly. They have a public railroad and commuting system that belongs in a third world country. Only the wealthy can really afford to go to college.They have children going to bed hungry and the schools take trays of food from them in school because they cant pay for it. They are taking kids from their parents and putting them in cages. They have a public school system underfunded trying to turn it into private religious indoctrination. They have peopl e in government who deny science because of what the bible says. They keep spending billions fighting senseless wars and bombing peopl e. They have a small population of billionaires that run the system to benefit themselves and screw the rest of the country.
ellauri325.html on line 26: POLITIKA play:none">Antikommunismia
ellauri325.html on line 47: Les dernières, les pl us rouillées, Viimeinen, ruosteisin,
ellauri325.html on line 64: Risk on strategialautapeli dipl omatiasta, konfliktista ja valloituksesta kahdesta kuuteen pelaajalle. Vakioversiota pelataan pöydällä, joka kuvaa maailman poliittista karttaa ja joka on jaettu 42 alueeseen, jotka on ryhmitelty kuuteen mantereeseen. Vuorot pyörivät pelaajien kesken, jotka hallitsevat pelinappuloiden armeijoita, joilla he yrittävät kaapata alueita muilta pelaajilta. Tulokset määräytyvät nopanheittojen perusteella. Pelaajat voivat muodostaa ja purkaa liittoutumia pelin aikana. Pelin tavoitteena on miehittää kaikki pelilaudan alueet ja eliminoida muut pelaajat. Peli voi olla pitkä, ja sen loppuun saattaminen voi kestää useista tunteista useisiin päiviin. Eurooppalaiset versiot on rakennettu siten, että jokaisella pelaajalla on rajoitettu "salainen tehtävä" -tavoite, joka lyhentää peliä. Jenkkien tavoite ei ole salainen, se on koko pallon hegemonia.
ellauri325.html on line 106: Ajatus, joka syntyi ensimmäisen kerran Neuvostoliiton hämärävuosina, kultainen miljardi on salaliittoteoria, jonka mukaan miljardin wannabe miljardöörin maailmanlaajuisen länsieliitin salaliitto pyrkii hamstraamaan maailman rikkauksia ja resursseja jättäen muun pl aneetan kärsimään ja kurjistumaan, nälkään kuolemaan ja nuolemaan näppejään. Presidentti Vladimir Putin ja muut Kremlin korkeat virkamiehet ovat vuosien ajan pitäneet ajatusta Venäjällä äärimmäisenä teoriana hyökkäyslinjana länttä vastaan Ukrainan konfliktin aiheuttamien suhteiden katketessa.
ellauri325.html on line 123: ploads/2020/01/Kuolema-Amerikalle-Iran-Teheran.jpg" />
ellauri325.html on line 163: Hei mitä lavastaja Roy eli "Juan Batiste Montabuan", siviilissä Tapio Vilpponen otti myöskin osaa propagandatalkoisiin! Arkadi Avertshenkon tyylilajissa. Tapio Vilpponen (31. toukokuuta 1913 Rauma – 31. elokuuta 1994 Helsinki) oli suomalainen käsikirjoittaja, lavastaja, puvustaja, taidemaalari, graafikko, sisustussuunnittelija, kuvanveistäjä, copywriter, toimittaja, pilapiirtäjä ja pakinoitsija. Hän myös näytteli muutamassa elokuvassa. Vilpponen käytti salanimiä Roy ja Juan Batiste Montauban. Vilpponen kirjoitti useita kioskilukemistoja (El Zorron seikkailut, Tilly, Pekka Lipponen junior) sekä nelisensataa jatkojännäriä. Kexittyään Jussi-palkinnon hän oli itse ensimmäisiä Jussi-palkittuja vuonna 1944, kun hänet palkittiin parhaasta lavastuksesta elokuvaan Herra ja ylhäisyys. Juan Batiste Montabuan on selvä pl agiaatti Simo Penttilästä. Zorron porukat on käytkaz yxyhteen TJA Heikkilän, tai Punavyön sivuvaunuineen. Inkkari Tacho on Tlacan kopio. Vilpponen oli Hirvosta 15v nuorempi. Heikon kuulonsa vuoxi hänkään ei joutunut ruotuun.
ellauri325.html on line 168: Harkovasta luikki Pietariin maxamatta sakkoja. Siellä teki pilalehtiä. Lokakuun vallankumouksen jälkeen kaikki muuttui dramaattisesti. Averchenko ja koko lehden henkilökunta ottivat kielteisen kannan bolshevikkiviranomaisia kohtaan, ja heinäkuussa 1918 bolshevikit sulkivat Uuden Satyriconin muiden oppositiojulkaisujen ohella. Palatakseen kotimaahansa Sevastopoliin (valkoisten miehittämälle Krimille ) Averchenko joutui käymään läpi lukuisia vaikeuksia matkaamalla Venäjän ja saksalaisten miehittämän alueen läpi Krimille. Siellä se veljeili Lenin pikkubroidin kaa. Dmitri Iljitš Uljanov ( 4. (16.) elokuuta 1874, Simbirsk - 16. heinäkuuta 1943, Gorki Leninski ) - Venäjän vallankumouksellinen ja Neuvostoliiton puolue- ja valtiomies, Vladimir Iljitš Leninin nuorempi veli. Vale-Dimitri oli valelääkäri joka seukkasi jonkun aikaa isobroidin sala-ampujan Fanny Kapl anin kanssa.
ellauri325.html on line 178: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f6/Arkady_Averchenko.jpg/300px-Arkady_Averchenko.jpg" />
ellauri325.html on line 197: No niin, millainen oli lavastaja Royn propagandapakina vlta 1943? Aika tavanomaista "a vot me ryssätolvanat" hupailua, pl us kommunismin haukkumista ja herkuttelua Moskovan pommituxilla 1941.
ellauri325.html on line 229: ploads/2020/03/polkka-2.jpg" />
ellauri325.html on line 234: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4c/Johst-hanns-1935b.jpg/400px-Johst-hanns-1935b.jpg" />
ellauri325.html on line 317: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/24/Simo-Puupponen.jpg" style="float:right" />
ellauri325.html on line 318: Simolta jäi gradu tekemättä kuten Hotakaiselta ja Kristina-tädiltä. Naurukin jäi kesken 52-vuotiaana 1967. Vuonna 1941 Simo siirtyi Savon Sanomiin toimittajaksi. Tähän aikaan hän alkoi julkaista lehdissä pakinoita nimimerkillä Aapeli. Pakinat kuvasivat jatkosotaa rivimiehen näkökulmasta. Laajemman yleisön tietoisuuteen hän tuli vuonna 1946, kun hän julkaisi lyhyen parodian Olavi Paavolaisen Synkästä yksinpuhelusta nimellä Mörkki monologi. Teksteissä esiintyy Aapelin vakiohahmo mäkitupalainen Hermanni Hulukkonen, joka tuo pakinoihin maalaishuumoria. Hauskuus syntyy myös kohelluksista ja vitsikkyydestä. Aapelin nuorisokirjoista tunnetuimmat ovat Koko kaupungin Vinski ja sen jatko-osa Detektivbüro Winski und Waldemar. Vittu Waldemar, se oli Winzent. Ne oli munkin mielikirjoja poikasena. Minä keitän täitä... Peopl e Are Not as Bad as They Seem (Finnish: Aika hyvä ihmiseksi) is a 1977 Finnish historical film directed by Rauni Mollberg, based on the novels by Aapeli. Minnettee puhheettee savveettee murreettee. Huoh.
ellauri325.html on line 334: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fd/Vaino-Nuorteva-1930s.jpg/250px-Vaino-Nuorteva-1930s.jpg" style="float:right" />
ellauri325.html on line 342: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c9/Olavi-Siippainen.jpg/500px-Olavi-Siippainen.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri325.html on line 489: Tampereen raastuvanoikeus totesi 6.6.1961 Jallu-lehden maaliskuun numeron epäsiveelliseksi sekä tuomitsi takavarikoidut lehden numerot, yhteensä 29 923 kpl , valtiolle menetetyiksi.
ellauri325.html on line 565: - Kuka? kuiskasin naapurilleni. Mela, korjaan Airo, vastasi Yrjö Vuorjoki. Manner-tannerheimiläinen rosvokopl a on työnnettävä kuin eno veneestä.
ellauri325.html on line 567: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/5e/Vilho_Helanen.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri325.html on line 569: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/89/Aksel_Airo_1940.jpg/375px-Aksel_Airo_1940.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri325.html on line 665: Elämäntyönsä tämä Kuusi teki Keskinäisen henkivakuutusyhtiö Salaman palveluksessa matemaatikkona 1910–1918, toisena johtajana 1918–1936 ja toimitusjohtajana 1936–1952. Salama ja Gummerus julkaisivat myös Vilho Helasen hengentuotteita. Suspect foul pl ay.
ellauri325.html on line 709: Leppoisa Martti Larni kirjallaan Neljäs Nikama oli toisixi kuuluisin suomalainen neukuissa. Sillä oli paljon rupl ia. Muita liiton tähtiä olivat levoton Matti Hälli, pateettisen touhukas Konkka, ja Haavion petitoveri, kernaasti naitava Aale Tynni. Sotavammaisen sekakäyttäjän Lasse Heikkilän Agapetus heitti pihalle huutaen kuin JK Paasikivi. Konkka ja Hälli olivat jeesmies Kuuselle kateita.
ellauri325.html on line 727: VIDEO
ellauri325.html on line 782: Kari Suomalainen on moniosaaja. Hän toimii mm. joukkueen varapallona. Varmuudexi hän esittää minulle vaijeritempun, jonka hän oppi Lande Lindforsilta. Tyypillinen stadinkundi, vanha norssi. Tytär sillä on räystäsperseinen. En ole ikinä tehnyt mitään mikä ei huvita, kuin Goethe ylvästeli. Masasta Kari Suomalainen oli Sokrates, vaikka sen politiikka oli pl atonismia. Masa on sosiaalijuntti. Jumalauta. Mixhän tää kirja katkeaa Kariin kuin kananlento. Loppuivatko julkkixet?
ellauri326.html on line 25: SALAMANTERI- SOTA play:none">Antiputinismia
ellauri326.html on line 34: Sammakkoeläimet on miehissä kuolemassa sukupuuttoon koko pl aneetalta. Syyt: ilmastokatastrofi ja termiittiapinoiden valtaamat ja pirstomat habitaatit. Kiitti apinat! Hyvin toimittu!
ellauri326.html on line 36: Syyllisyyttä vielä tuntevat länsivallat kiemurtelevat juutalaisten listiessä Palestiinan väkeä. Paskapl ärä The Guardian ei julkaissut pilakuvaa jossa Netanjahu kumittaa mahastaan Gazan karttaa nyrkkeilyhanskat kädessä. Se ei ollut riittävän semitistinen. Frankfurtin kirjamessut tukkivat palkitun palestiinalaisen naisen suun jonka kirja käsitteli 40-luvun juttua jossa juutalaiset sotilaat raiskasivat beduiinitytön tylpillä tuppikulleilla. Huijuijui, ateriakexejä! Eihän tälläsestä sovi nytten puhua! Israelilla on täysi oikeus pitää puoliaan! Räjäyttää vaikka puolentuhatta potilasta ilmaan sairaalan mukana. Paizi ettehän ne olleet te vaan se toinen puoli sanoo jenkkiseniili. Sori että nirhasimme vain ne 6 miljoonaa! Kiinan keisarit oivalsivat että vihamiehet on listittävä suvuittain, jos tahtoo välttää jälkipuhheita. Se on ollut selvää moosexenuskoisillekin, kolmanteen ja neljänteen polveen on kosto ulotettava. Piscuisten päät on lyötävä muusixi kiwiin nääs.
ellauri326.html on line 48: Joulun alla Intiasta roudatut oikeistoinkkarit saivat ajetuxi läpi lait joilla Rule Britannia lakkaa kokonaan ottamasta vastaan pakolaisia. Veneilevät vieraat lähetetään tästä lähin huipputurvalliseen Ruandaan tiilenpäitä laskemaan. Britit näyttävät jälleen kerran mistä anglosaxit on tehty. The witch is dead, long live her repl acement from India!
ellauri326.html on line 122: Kysymyksenne saattaa minut ymmälle. Tiedän esimerkiksi, että minun pl enella kiinalaisella Bibi-koirallani on pl eni, ihastuttava sielu. Samoin on minun persialaisella kissallani Sidi Hanumilla sielu, merkillinen, hirvittävä sielu. Mutta salamanterit! Ne ovat sangen lahjakkaita ja viisaita, ne pikku eläimet, ja ne osaavat puhua ja laskea ja olla suureksi hyödyksi, mutta ne ovat niin hirveän rumia!
ellauri326.html on line 174: Kaikki tämä puhuu Maan rajallisuudesta ja lisää tietoisuutta pl aneetan tulevaisuudesta. Jos Capekin jo vuonna 1936 hälyttävä viesti on vielä painavampi vuonna 2021, teoksen sävy on kaukana vakavasta. Hänen puheensa on täynnä ironiaa. Hän esimerkiksi päättää tehdä raportteja vääristä tieteellisistä kongresseista ja romaanin erittäin hauskoista ja erittäin todennäköisistä poliittisista julistuksista toimittajien säännöllisin väliintuloin, jotka kutsuvat poliittisia tai tieteellisiä henkilöitä puhumaan salamanteriongelmasta tieteellisin sanoin, melkein moukkamainen!
ellauri326.html on line 188: Salamanterien sota on kuitenkin lukemisen arvoinen vielä tänäkin päivänä: dystopia sekä hullu ja räikeä, kirja kertoo älykkään merisalamanterilajin löydöstä jostain Sumatran rannikolta. alku saa uskomaan seikkailutarinaan, jossa on kevyt ja etäinen sävy. Mutta ymmärrämme nopeasti, että näemme romaanin pesänukkeista vain pienimmät, joiden rakenne muuttuu pian vähitellen laajenemalla, kirjoittajan jatkuvasti turmelemalla lukijansa odotukset. Miehet kesyttävät ensin salamanterit, pitävät pian erittäin hyödyllisenä muuttaa ne vedenalaiseksi työvoimaksi halutessaan ja käyttävät niitä häpeämättömästi hyväkseen julistamalla heidän oletettua alemmuuttaan. Sitten he ymmärtävät virheensä laajuuden, mutta silloin on liian myöhäistä palata... Tietyt luvut, jotka pastisoivat tieteellisen tutkimuksen, journalistisen raportoinnin tai dipl omaattisen analyysin sävyä, ovat suoraan sanottuna hauskoja. Aina yllättävän kirjan lopussa loppu on niin odottamaton, että ihmettelee, onko se kirjailijan piruetti, joka haluaa päästä kirjansa loppuun, vai eikö se ole johtopäätös taitavasti häiritsevin..
ellauri326.html on line 265: Mutta näiden sadan vuoden aikana olemme kehittäneet huipputeknologiaa, mikä erottaa meidät ensimmäisestä siirtolaisuudesta! Jos heillä oli silloin kirjallisuuspiiri Harbinissa, ja he tunsivat olevansa eksyksissä, koska venäläisen kulttuurin pääkaupunki Berliini ja Pariisi olivat toisella pl aneetalla, nyt jos olet junassa jossain Afrikassa ja sinulla on Wi-Fi, olet venäläisen kulttuurin keskus. On venäläisen kulttuurin kantajia, kuluttajia ja luojia. Yhtäkkiä tämä venäläisen kulttuurin maa ilmestyi. Tuli tunne, että haluan olla tämän maan, venäläisen kulttuurin kansalainen, jossa ei ole Putinia eikä Malyuta Skuratovia, mutta tulee olemaan Tšaikovski ja Rahmaninov. Ja yhtäkkiä oli mahdollisuus elää tässä maassa, joka ei riipu alueen kirouksesta. Se on virtuaalinen, mutta ei virtuaalinen; se ei todennäköisesti koskaan ole offline-tilassa.
ellauri326.html on line 309: Sodan alkamisen jälkeen kuuluisa amerikkalainen kielitieteilijä ja filosofi Noam Chomsky erottui ristiriitaisista lausunnoista, jotka resonoivat Kremlin kannan kanssa, joka väittää, että Venäjä on sodassa NATO:n kanssa ja tekee sen "inhimillisemmin kuin Yhdysvallat Irakissa". Huhtikuun alussa 2022 Lähi-idän The National News -julkaisun haastattelussa Chomsky toisti myös lauseen "sodasta viimeiseen ukrainalaiseen" ja selvensi lainaavansa kuuluisaa eläkkeellä olevaa amerikkalaista dipl omaattia Charles (Chaz) Freemania. Itse asiassa Freeman ei ollut tämän nälväisyn kekkaaja. Hän sanoi ne kaksi viikkoa aikaisemmin amerikkalaisen äärivasemmiston resurssin The Grayzonen haastattelussa (merkittävä Kremlin propagandassa), viitaten monin tavoin "länteen".
Expresidentti Obama sanoi suoraan, että Yhdysvaltain armeija ei osallistu ulkomaisiin konflikteihin. …Mutta sotilaallinen toiminta ei voi olla joka tapauksessa ainoa tai edes tärkein osa johtajuuttamme. Se, että meillä on paras vasara, ei tarkoita, että jokainen ongelma on naula. Barack Obama pani merkille kollektiivisen toiminnan tehokkuuden. Hän luetteli niihin: dipl omatia, taloudelliset pakotteet, eristyneisyys ja turvautuminen kansainväliseen oikeuteen.
ellauri326.html on line 335: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/81/Imre_Kemeri_Nagy_and_Oscar_Enckell.png/500px-Imre_Kemeri_Nagy_and_Oscar_Enckell.png" height="300px" />
ellauri326.html on line 336: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/67/Swedish_Winter_War_volunteers.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri326.html on line 369: Tärkein tapahtuma on vain suomalaisia varten järjestetty ns. ylijäämähuutokauppa Brewster F2A-hävittäjistä, joista Suomeen saapui sodan aikana vain 8 kpl Ruotsissa tapahtuneen kokoamisen jälkeen
ellauri326.html on line 391: Decisions on what type of weapons can be suppl ied have changed over time. Initially there were a number of Russian "red line" warnings about suppl ying certain types of lethal weapons. Over time, a number of these red lines have diluted and melted away, allowing weapons to be delivered without too many threats of dire retribution or consequences to the suppl ier.
ellauri326.html on line 393: Some NATO countries and allies, such as Germany and Sweden, have reversed past policies against providing offensive military aid in order to support Ukraine, while the European Union for the first time in its history suppl ied lethal arms through its institutions.
ellauri326.html on line 395: The donation of military aid was coordinated at monthly meetings in the Ukraine Defense Contact Group, throughout the war. A first meeting took pl ace between 41 countries on 26 April 2022, and the coalition comprised 54 countries (all 30 member states of NATO and 24 other countries) at the latest meeting on 14 February 2023. All EU member states donated military aid both individually as sovereign countries and collectively via EU institutions, except of three countries (Hungary, Cyprus and Malta) that opted not to donate military aid individually as sovereign countries.
ellauri326.html on line 436: Russia has sent a dipl omatic letter to the United States warning it not to suppl y Ukraine with any more weapons and that the United States and NATO aid of the "most sensitive" weapons to Ukraine were "adding fuel" and could bring "unpredictable consequences."
ellauri326.html on line 438: Olga Skabeyeva said on state-owned Rossiya 1 TV: "It can safely be called World War Three. That's entirely for sure. [...] We're definitely fighting against NATO infrastructure, if not NATO itself. We need to recognise that." She has further claimed that NATO is suppl ying Ukraine with "zillions of weapons". (Which is entirely true, see the list .)
ellauri326.html on line 447: Reino Vilho (Wilhelm) Silvanto (sukunimi vuoteen 1929 saakka Sylvander; 21. heinäkuuta 1883 Helsinki – 29. tammikuuta 1943 Helsinki) oli suomalainen dipl omaatti ja kirjailija. Hän käytti suomentajana myös nimimerkkejä R.W.S, Reino Silva ja Reino Silvala. Silvannon vanhemmat olivat puuseppä Karl Kristoffer Sylvander ja Elviira Kallentytär. Hän pääsi ylioppilaaksi 1903 Helsingin reaalilyseosta ja valmistui Helsingin yliopistosta filosofian kandidaatiksi 1908 ja maisteriksi 1910. Silvanto oli aluksi opettajana eri oppilaitoksissa Helsingissä, Forssassa ja Kotkassa. Hän oli Suomen tietotoimiston palveluksessa 1918 ja toimi sitten asianajotoimisto Sarkanen & Helmeen liikeosaston osastopäällikkönä 1918-1920.
ellauri326.html on line 510: Mutta ennenkuin käymme eteenpäin, pitää ehdottomasti tutustuttaa lukijaa tähän huomattavaan henkilöön. Anton Prokofjevitsh Golopus on kerrassaan hyvä mies tämän sanan täydessä merkityksessä: jos joku Mirgorodin kunnianarvoisista henkilöistä lahjottaa hänelle kaulahuivin tai alusvaatteet — niin hän kiittää; jos joku näppää kevyesti hänen nenäänsä — niin hän kiittää silloinkin. Jos häneltä kysyttiin: "Miksi, Anton Prokofjevitsh, teidän takkinne on kanelinvärinen, mutta hihat siniset?" niin hän tavallisesti vastasi: "Niin, teillä ei sellaista olekkaan! Mutta antakaahan olla, kun se kuluu, niin muuttuu kokonaan yhdenväriseksi!" Ja todellakin, auringon vaikutuksesta alkoi sininen kangas muuttua kanelinväriseksi, ja on nyt aivan samaa väriä kuin takkikin. Mutta mikä kummallista, Anton Prokofjevitsh käyttää kesällä verkavaatteita ja talvella nankinikankaisia. Anton Prokofjevitshilla ei ole omaa taloa. Hänellä oli kyllä sellainen ennen kaupungin laidassa, mutta hän möi sen ja osti tummanruskean kolmivaljakon ja pienet vaunut, joilla ajeli vierailuille ympäristön tilanomistajain luo. Mutta kun hevosista oli paljon vaivaa ja tarvittiin rahaa kauroihin, niin Anton Prokofjevitsh vaihtoi hevoset ja vaunut viuluun ja piikaan ja sai vielä 25 rupl an setelin välirahaa. Sitten hän möi viulun ja vaihtoi piian kullalla koristettuun safiaaninahkaiseen tupakkakukkaroon, ja nyt ei ole kenelläkään sellaista tupakkakukkaroa kuin Anton Prokofjevitshilla. Tästä hyvästä hän ei enää saata ajella maaseudulle, vaan on pakotettu pysymään kaupungissa ja viettämään yönsä eri taloissa milloin minkin aatelismiehen luona, etupäässä siellä, missä mielellään hänen nenäänsä näppäillään. Anton Prokofjevitsh tahtoo syödä hyvin ja pelaa joltisesti Mustaa-Maijaa ja Mylly-Mattia. Tottelevaisuus on hänen elementtinsä, ja sentähden hän otti heti hatun ja kepin ja läksi.
ellauri326.html on line 556: Le Cercles des zutistes, en particulier Verlaine, Rimbaud et Germain Nouveau, multipl ie les attaques contre François Coppée, accusé de défendre une littérature paternaliste et familialiste, alors qu'il serait lui-même un «inverti». Les « poètes maudits » de son temps (Verlaine, Rimbaud, Charles Cros) aimaient à pasticher ses dizains.
ellauri327.html on line 26:
Koirameemejä play:none">Reviiriajattelua
ellauri327.html on line 29: les-5-races-de-chiens-les-pl us-desobeissantes-ils-sont-jolis-mais-ils-ne-font-pas-attention-a-vous. 5 tottelemattominta koirarotua.
ellauri327.html on line 42: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/On_ne_passe_pas-1915.jpg/1280px-On_ne_passe_pas-1915.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri327.html on line 43: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/6d/On_Ne_Passe_Pas_1918.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri327.html on line 56: ploaded_images/no-parasan.jpeg" height="200px" />
ellauri327.html on line 58: ploads/2018/06/alvaro-p-ff-no-pasaran.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri327.html on line 62: ploads/2020/06/No-Pasaran-3-volume.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri327.html on line 65: ploads/2011/05/DSC_9083_2_NO_PASARAN.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri327.html on line 66: ploads/2018/07/no-pasaran.png" height="200px" />
ellauri327.html on line 73: ploads/2014/02/BD-No-Pasaran-240x300.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri327.html on line 79: ploads/2017/03/You-shall-not-pass.gif" height="200px" />
ellauri327.html on line 85:
ellauri327.html on line 98: Yipei Feng: As a Ukrainian citizen, I want Ukraine to reunite with Russia. After all, we've always been stronger together as a peopl e then divided and at odds. What do Russians and Ukrainians think about this?
ellauri327.html on line 109: Russians in eastern Ukraine and Russia needed to intervene to protect their peopl e. Anything else is a lie and shame on nazi Ukraine NATO puppet.Ukranians lost identity because Ukraine historically never existed as a state. They are ex Russians. Ukraine is a socialist leftover as a so called part of ex anti Russian entity of SSSR.
ellauri327.html on line 120: NATO lovede Ukraine en fremtidig pl ads som medlem.
ellauri327.html on line 133: USA har været i dyb økonomisk krise de sidste par år, og brugt for mange penge på ting som f.eks. Covid.. Men nu lige pl udselig, så er hele verden anspændt, og de vil alle købe våben igen, som jo tilfældigvis er deres største eksport… det var dog godt nok et pudsigt sammentræft var 😂
ellauri327.html on line 166: Zelensky er tilsyneladende finansieret (og jf. nogle kilder) pl aceret af USA. En 2. rangs ukrainsk skuespiller, der pl udselig er præsident og angiveligt milliardær? Hvordan er han blevet dét?
ellauri327.html on line 221: Idan barbaria: (virnistelee ja kiroaa puolestaan lännen kapitalistis-imperialistisen rosvokopl an).
ellauri327.html on line 239: Lännen kapitalistis-imperialistinen rosvokopl a: Mitä tämä on? Mitämi- ? Suomi ahdistaa idan barbaarilaum... tuota noin... tarkoitamme sivistyksen etuvartijaa, viatonta bolshevikiaa!! Mitämitä? Mitämitä? Miten selitätte!!!
ellauri327.html on line 241: Idan barbaari: Vot, auttakaa! Hjuvat toverit Lännen kapitalistis- mperialistinen rosvokopl ... ash!... tarkoittamash.. hjuvat veljet. Sivistyksen etuvartijat... auttakaa. Suomi päälle käy, Suomen rosvokopl a päälle käy... tannermanner... näettehän!
ellauri327.html on line 243: Lännen kapitalistis-imperialistinen rostokopl a: Jees, näemmehän! Ettemmeko näkisi., hyvät veljet barbaarit - so sorry hyvat ros- äsh. tarkoitamme hyvät veljet, sivistyksen etuvartijat, mehän näemme!
ellauri327.html on line 256: Uusi Seelanti: Sota, sota! Tietysti sota! Ja totta kai! Kaikkihan Suomen tunnemme ja muistamme! Pieni, sitkeä, sisukas. lännen etuvartiokansa idan rietasta sarvikyytä vastassa.. siispä sota! Kirottu olkoon idän barbaaribolshevikkisarvikyysappermentti! Kolminkertaisesti kirottu. Well, siispä sota Suomelle! Sota! Sappermentti, pappenheim! We suspect there has been some foul pl ay!
ellauri327.html on line 284: Engvall bokdebuterade år 2008 med boken 14 år till salu. Boken handlar om en vanlig småstadstjej vid namn Tessan som efter en våldtäkt börjar sälja sex för att få bekräftelse och dämpa sin svåra ångest. Boken 14 år till salu var en av Sveriges mest sålda 2010. Den belönades 2010 med priset Platinabocken på Bokmässan i Göteborg för mer än 100 000 sålda exempl ar.
ellauri327.html on line 292: ploads/Boka_CaronlineEngvall_SannaBrading_Athenas-e1619444136344.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri327.html on line 329: I sina trosor letar psykopat, präst och publicist Maria Sundblom Lindberg i Hobla. Som ett duralexglas mot mitt svarta trendiga badrumsgolv, sprack min tro i den östra halvan av mänskligheten: 9/11 2001, 2/24 2022, och denna vecka när stackars Israelerna blev brutalt övertrampade av en broms. Kyss vecken hela veckan, ditt smalögd pl ättansikte med överlång lugg.
ellauri327.html on line 340: ploads/2021/05/putin-passport.jpg?ssl=1" />
ellauri327.html on line 346: ploads/2021/05/putin-mother.jpeg?ssl=1" height="400px" />
ellauri327.html on line 354: ploads/2020/08/gettyimages-170438944-2048x2048-1.jpg?ssl=1" width="60%" />
ellauri327.html on line 363: ploads/2021/04/word-image-85.jpeg?resize=256%2C250&ssl=1" />
ellauri327.html on line 384:
ellauri327.html on line 385: ploads/2023/07/word-image-16258-70.jpeg?resize=270%2C270&ssl=1" />
ellauri327.html on line 386: ploads/2023/07/word-image-16258-9.gif?resize=222%2C283&ssl=1" />
ellauri327.html on line 387: ploads/2023/07/word-image-16258-14.jpeg?resize=200%2C238&ssl=1" />
ellauri327.html on line 388: ploads/2023/07/word-image-16258-8.jpeg?w=343&ssl=1" />
ellauri327.html on line 389: ploads/2023/07/word-image-16258-16.jpeg?resize=175%2C241&ssl=1" />
ellauri327.html on line 390: ploads/2023/07/word-image-16258-34.jpeg?resize=200%2C219&ssl=1"
ellauri327.html on line 391: ploads/2023/07/word-image-16258-44.jpeg?resize=151%2C200&ssl=1" />
ellauri327.html on line 392: ploads/2023/07/word-image-16258-46.jpeg?resize=200%2C197&ssl=1" />
ellauri327.html on line 395: Mutta Rasputinia ei tällälset ryppypeput kiinnosta. For Litvinenko directly accused Russian President Vladimir Putin of pedophilia. Suspiciously affectionate relationships with other peopl e’s children, and exclusively male, arise in the Russian president almost everywhere he is: an acquaintance and lustful smiles are necessarily followed by hugs, and often kisses. He kissed this preschooler Nikita on the bellybutton.
ellauri327.html on line 397: ploads/2021/10/gettyimages-51581588-2048x2048-1.jpg?resize=1536%2C1038&ssl=1" width="90%" />
ellauri327.html on line 401: And Ukraine is doing the entire world a favor by sacrificing its peopl e and seeing its country destroyed to stop Putin and defeat Russia. We owe Ukraine a huge debt of gratitude that far exceeds the weapons we have suppl ied to them. They have sacrificed their country. Their lives. Their infrastructure to save our countries from having to endure what they are doing.
ellauri327.html on line 407: Самое страшное, что часть мира привыкла к войне в Украине, для них это становится похожим на шоу, - Зеленский. “You see this in the United States, in Europe. And we see that as soon as they start to get a little tired, for them it becomes like a show: I can’t watch this repeat for the 10th time,” the head of state expl ained. 17:48 10/30/2023 6 570 53
ellauri327.html on line 422: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/76/HarlanCoben.jpg/375px-HarlanCoben.jpg" />
ellauri327.html on line 428: Kurt Cobainin sellupl äjäyxet on jotain ennenkuulumattoman syyläistä. Niistä tehdyt Netflix-rykäyxet on yhtä tautisia. Kokoajan on pimeää, kokoajan syrjäytyneet persut roimii toisiaan, oli ne ranskalaisia porkkananenäisiä hukkapätkä narukauloja, tai sitten isonenäreikäisiä anorektisia trofeevaimoja tai jotain polakkeja häränniska rekkakuskeja. Mutta puheet ja sentimentit on suoraan Setä Samin hrahahlaarista: tauotonta valehtelua, feikki virnuilua, "I promise", "trust me", "my family", poliiseista ei ole mihinkään, ize täytyy juosta retkubaareissa ja ottaa turpaan mafioosoilta. Ja kaikki, kaikki tyynni ikäviä ihmisiä jotka vetää mömmöjä ja juoxee rahan perässä. Tää Coben tuli mainituxi "Remo vanha vainoojan" iskän Warren senjasen sitaatissa albumissa 304 pulpkynäilijöiden listassa. Enpä arvannut että näin pian ehkä kohdataan. Samaa luokkaa ovat kyllä Warren ja sen listaamat muut paskanjauhajat.
ellauri327.html on line 447: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ec/Ilmari-Kianto-1964.jpg/500px-Ilmari-Kianto-1964.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri327.html on line 466: ploads/2023/10/erika-marika-fight-768x453.jpg.webp" />
ellauri327.html on line 513: Vuonna 1924 ilmestyi Kiannon toinen pääteos, romaani Ryysyrannan Jooseppi. joka oli puhdas pl agiaatti Joel Lehtosen Putkinotkosta.
ellauri327.html on line 591: Ukrainassa on kaksi uraanin louhinta- ja jalostusyritystä, raskaan veden tuotantolaitos, elektroniikkakomponenttien kehitysteknologia ja erikoislaitteet ydinmateriaalien isotooppisen koostumuksen mittaamiseen. Dmytro Snegyrev, viitaten ukrainalaisiin tutkijoihin, ilmaisi mielipiteen, että Ukrainalla on mahdollisuus 5–7 vuodessa 200–300 miljoonan dollarin vuosirahoituksella kehittää tekniikoita ydinaseiden valmistukseen ja tuotantolaitosten kunnostamiseen. Ratkaistavia tehtäviä ovat tritiumin tuotanto, asekäyttöinen pl utoniumreaktori, pl utoniumia rikastava radiokemiallinen laitos ja metallurginen laitos aselaatuisen pl utoniumin tuotantoa varten. Huomionarvoista on myös se, että Ukrainalla on yksi alueiden rikkaimmista uraanivarannoista.
ellauri328.html on line 24: VAD ÄR EN DIKTATUR? play:none">Lipilaaria
ellauri328.html on line 28: ploads/2023/01/Vad-ar-en-diktatur.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri328.html on line 63: Och sedan, när historien om diktaturen tar slut för deras del, börjar genast historien om igen. Liksom i Ryssland. Fast proletariatets diktatur hör egentligen inte hit, inte heller pl utokraternas oligarki.
ellauri328.html on line 73: I medierna pågår ständiga diskussioner om ungdomars välbefinnande och de utmaningar som skolorna står inför. Lärarnas arbete har blivit allt mer kompl icerat i takt med att barn och ungdomar uttrycker ett ökat illamående och presterar sämre i sina studier. Föräldrarna beter sig allt skitigare, dom tänker att dom äger skolan och lärarna, att dom själva är någon sorts betalande kunder och lärare deras servitörer. Diskussioner om nedskärningar skapar otrygghet bland lärare och elever då behovet för ökade resurser i elevvården är uppenbart.
ellauri328.html on line 77: De ovannämnda värderingarna strider mot mänsklighetens bästa. De krockar med principerna i den finländska läropl anen, som omfattar jämlikhet, omsorg, gemenskap och respekt för individen och naturen. Att navigera i denna konflikt utgör en stor utmaning för skolpersonalen.
ellauri328.html on line 83: Det är viktigt att våra beslutsfattare blir påminda om sina värderingar nu då budgetförhandlingarna varit aktuella: Styrs de av affärsvärldens värderingar så som känslolös konkurrens och maximal ekonomisk vinst? Eller omfamnar de i stället läropl anens värdegrund, den som vi som lärare arbetar hårt för att stärka hos över 500 000 medborgare i vårt land?
ellauri328.html on line 117: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1a/MK38040_Buchenwald_Lagertor.jpg/440px-MK38040_Buchenwald_Lagertor.jpg" />
ellauri328.html on line 154: 26.-27. elokuuta käydään Dresdenin taistelu. Taistelun toisena päivänä Moro, huomattuaan ranskalaisten alkavan ampua kukkulalla sijaitsevaan Ruåzin kuninkaan seurakuntaan, sanoo, että heidän on lähdettävä, he lähtevät naapuripatterille lehdon läpi, mutta eivät saavuta sitä, Moreau's hevoseen osuu tykinkuula, joka menee suoraan läpi ja osuu kenraalin molempiin jalkoihin. Moro viedään Kainzin kylään. Moron leikatun jalan tuo Napoleonin leiriin hänen koiransa Fifi. Napoleon ja marsalkat katsovat, että kappas korkea-arvoinen upseeri on tapettu, ja katsovat koiran kaulapantaa, johon on kirjoitettu "Kuluu kansalaiselle J. Y. Moro." Napoleon iloitsee: "Oikeus on vihdoin tehty! Suum kuikve!" Joukoiden keskuudessa oli pitkään legenda, että Napoleon näki Moron kaukoputken läpi, kohdisti itse tykin ja ampui. Moreaun toinenkin jalka amputoitiin, mutta tämä ei auttanut. Moro kuoli kaksi viikkoa myöhemmin Nötnitzin linnassa. Hänet haudattiin Nevski Prospektille, jonka vastakkaiselle puolelle Generalissimo Suvorov, hänen tärkein vastustajansa Italian kampanjassa, haudattiin. Moro vitun loikkari sai Venäjällä marsalkka-arvon, ja Ranskassa Louis kahdeksastoista myönsi hänelle marsipaaniporsaan. Moreaun vaimolle tarjottiin lähtöä Venäjälle 30 000 rupl an elinikäisellä eläkkeellä ja Aleksanterin lahjalla 100 000 rupl aa; hänen tyttärestään voisi tulla keisarinnan hovissa kunnianeito. Pariisin vangitsemisen jälkeen Aleksanteri kuitenkin esitteli Alexandrinan Ludvig 18:lle, ja hän jäi asumaan Ranskaan 12 000 frangin eläkkeellä. Pian Leipzigin taistelussa (Kansakuntien taistelu) Napoleon voitti ja vetäytyi Ranskaan.
ellauri328.html on line 219: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/74/Joseph_Freiherr_von_Eichendorff_%281841%29.jpg/440px-Joseph_Freiherr_von_Eichendorff_%281841%29.jpg" />
ellauri328.html on line 403: Lokakuussa 2019 Papyriprojektia hallinnoivan voittoa tavoittelemattoman British Egypt Expl oration Society -järjestön virkamiehet väittivät, että Oxfordin akateemikko Dirk Obbink varasti ja myi "ainakin 11 muinaista raamatunpalaa Greenbackin perheelle, Hobby Lobbyn omistajille. jotka pitävät raamattumuseota ja hyväntekeväisyysjärjestöä Washingtonissa." Museo ilmoitti palauttavansa palaset Egypt Expl oration Societylle ja Oxfordin yliopistolle.
ellauri328.html on line 419: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d6/Portrait_of_Ken_Howard%2C_Episcopal_Priest%2C_with_cross_and_star_of_david_stoll.jpg/440px-Portrait_of_Ken_Howard%2C_Episcopal_Priest%2C_with_cross_and_star_of_david_stoll.jpg" />
ellauri328.html on line 478: Tämä uutispl äjäys tuli juutalaisjohtoiselta CNN:ltä. CNN:n omistaa Warner Bros (watsup doc? munch munch) jonka CEO on puolalais-ukrainalainen jutku David Zaslav. Lisätietoa seuraavassa:
ellauri328.html on line 510: ploads/2023/11/urnpublicidap.org48d109c21c11f8df80053d15ff7b77b7Congress_Censure_73801.jpg?d=780x520" />
ellauri330.html on line 26: Tietoisuuden mysteeri play:none">Höpsismiä
ellauri330.html on line 113: Aristoteleen keskustelu kasvien, eläinten ja ihmisten välisistä eroista voidaan integroida evoluutioteoriaan, jos huomaamme, että organismit eivät ole koneita (kun kyseessä on pelkkä mieli yhdistynyt ihminen), vaan termodynaamisia järjestelmiä (Smit, 2018). Organismit ovat avoimia termodynaamisia järjestelmiä, joilla on aineenvaihdunta (koordinoitu kemiallisten reaktioiden järjestelmä, joka myötävaikuttaa sen ylläpitämiseen, eli järjestelmä, joka tuo energiaa ylläpitääkseen järjestystä, mutta myös kasvaakseen, lisääntyäkseen jne.) ja perinnöllinen repl ikaatio (kopiointijärjestelmä jota uusi rakenne muistuttaa vanhaa, käyttämällä sukuelimiä, jotka tuottavat jälkeläisten lisäksi paljon jännitystä elämään ja vieläpä puhdasta autuutta tullessaan yhtä aikaa sisäkkäin.)
ellauri330.html on line 156: src="https://images.cdn.yle.fi/image/upl oad/c_crop,h_2592,w_4606,x_0,y_0/ar_1.7777777777777777,c_fill,g_faces,h_675,w_1200/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/v1696592106/39-1182450651ff0779d5f0" width="70%"/>
ellauri330.html on line 206: Länsitrolli John McLaughlin lisää että These maps predate the Russian invasion. Since the invasion, you’ll find more and more peopl e who claim Ukrainian as their native language. Nationally, the education ministry is enforcing more consistently rules that require school instruction (of all topics, including Russian) to be conducted only in Ukrainian. Toinen trolli läväyttää vaihtoehtoisen kielikartan:
ellauri330.html on line 406: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/59/Peter_Kropotkin_circa_1900.jpg/440px-Peter_Kropotkin_circa_1900.jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri330.html on line 422: Marx ei ollut mikään pelkkä statisti, toisin kuin bolshevikit. Ranskalainen marksologi Maximilien Rubel vuonna 1973 julkaistussa artikkelissa Marx: Theorist of Anarchism on jopa väittänyt, että Marx oli modernin anarkismin pioneeri! Rupl a oli vissisti ryssän juutalainen, eikö vain? Bingo, kropotkin ja marx lookalike Ruubel asui juutalaisperäisyydestään johtuen puolisalaisesti Pariisissa Saksan miehittämänä. Maximilien Rubel (10. lokakuuta 1905, Chernivtsi – 28. helmikuuta 1996, Pariisi) oli ukrainalainen marxilainen historioitsija, humanisti ja neuvoston kommunisti. Kuulu vietnamilainen entinen trotskilainen Ngo Van josta tuli työväenaatteen luopio muistuttaa, että Marxin uudelleenlukemisen lisäksi Rubel esitteli heijariaan ryhmän muille "aikansa lahjomattomille ja säälimättömille tuomareille", kuten Soren Kierkegaardille ja Friedrich Nietzschelle , ajattelijoille, jotka kannattivat "uusia arvoja, uusia syitä elää": uudet normit näyttelemiselle, uusi etiikka. Uusi hah, samaa vanhaa pappispimitystä taas.
ellauri330.html on line 541: Tuoppi olutta ja kakſi korttelia wiinaa lipparikſi on kohtuullinen mitta ja määrä wäsyneen miehen kurkkuum ja päähän. Nytpä kannu keikkui ja parta kastui, pojat laulaa lasketteliwat ja muorin tyttäret nauraa rikosteliwat. Mutta läkſinpä iloleikistä pois, läksin pitkin katua täymään. Lauluni remahti, akkunat ſäpäleiksi sälähti, ja ſiitäpä liikkeille Tampereen poroporwarit kaikki. Mutta minä, aina lystipoika, minä wiitenä wilkkasin pitkin rantaa, heille potkaisin wasten kuonoa ſoraa ja ſantaa. Tulin siitä Poriin, pantiin pärekoriin ja wedettiin pitkin torii; tulin Uuteenkaupunkiin, siellä akkunasta haukuttiin; tulin Turkuun, pistettiin puukko kurkkuun. Tulinpa lopulta Aningaisten kadun haaraan ja siellä kohtasin wiifi nokkelata naaraa. Ensimmäinen potkaisi mua jalallansa, toinen sanoi: anna sen pojan olla alallansa! hän ei ole mitään rakkari eikä mikään pikiprakkari. Mutta kolmas kysyi: mikä sitä poikaa waiwaa? ja neljäs sanoi: häntä pitäis auttaa ajallansa. No lähdetäänpäs käsi kädessä käymään, lausuin minä, mutta wiides tuuppasi wihaisesti nyrkillänsä ja ärjähti: mene Helsinkiin! Menin minä Helsinkiin, pantiin syömään kruunun wellinkii, ja sitten poikaa tutkittiin ja huikeasti selkään hutkittiin: mene nyt tiehes, finä wasaran-poika! Läksin taasen tietä käymään, minä weitikka, aina iloinen, minä, jonka sydän on kuin hylkeennahkainen tupakkikukkaro. Kuljeskelin, laulelin ja tallustelin pitkin tölmällistä tietä; tulin Hämeeseen, astuin ylös Kuninkalan ſaarnastuoliin; ja sitten oli ammen pl ottis!
ellauri330.html on line 545: lyhytläntä, typpihäntä." „Mutta ei nyt mitään muuta tällä erällä, waan että lammas on laakea eläin, ei hän puske eikä potki, mutta kas kun härkä pääsee wallallensa, hän puuhaa puuta, kuopii maata ja puhaltaa sen tulen palawata lokaa ja rapaa paimenta wasten naamaa ja napaa. Ja sitten oli taasen ammen pl ottis! jokainen menköön omaan koppiins, minä menen kiwimuuriin." Sehän oli saarna.
ellauri331.html on line 27: PROPAGANDASOTAA play:none">Voluntarismia
ellauri331.html on line 48: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/2a/F-35_B61-12_trial.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri331.html on line 89: Seth Godin on kuuluisa amerikkalainen sarjayrittäjä, kirjailija ja bloggaaja. Seth Godinin kirja "A Gift Plus" on tunnustettu Forbesliikekirja 2004. Kahden ensimmäisen vuoden aikana hänen kirjaansa "Purpl e Cow" myytiin yli 150 tuhatta kappaletta. Se on enemmän kuin Vits Sackville -Westin The Edwardians bestselleriä.
ellauri331.html on line 97: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f7/Burgess-cow.jpg/1280px-Burgess-cow.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri331.html on line 99: Marketer Seth Godin has used the phrase "Purpl e Cow" for the concept of marketing a product as "intrinsically different" in his book, Purpl e Cow: Transform Your Business by Being Remarkable."
ellauri331.html on line 193: Venäjän oikeusministeriö lisäsi 23. heinäkuuta 2021 The Insiderin luetteloonsa [ ru ] "ulkomaisesta joukkomediasta, joka suorittaa ulkomaisen agentin tehtäviä ". Moskovan tuomioistuin määräsi 14. joulukuuta 2021 myyntipisteen maksamaan miljoona rupl aa ( 100K$).
ellauri331.html on line 209: Venäjän yritysdatamarkkinoista. Se on meedioiden oligarkki ja oligarkkien meedia. Interfax-Religion "on ollut vuosien ajan toimivin, ikään kuin itsenäinen ja kuitenkin henkilökohtaisesti sidoksissa Charles Chapl iniin, jolla on rutkasti tietoa kirkkoasioista."
ellauri331.html on line 265: Syyskuussa 2018 englanninkielinen Wikipedia hylkäsi Occupy Democratsin lähteenä sen epäluotettavuuden vuoksi. Lokakuussa 2018 Simmons Researchin 38 uutisorganisaation tutkimuksessa Occupy Democrats sijoittui amerikkalaisten kolmanneksi vähiten luotetuksi uutisorganisaatioksi. Breitbart News, Daily Kos ja Palmer Report sekä InfoWars ja The Daily Caller (6kpl ) olivat vielä alempana.
ellauri331.html on line 310: Huhtikuussa 2014 pitkäaikainen päätoimittaja Andrew McChesney erosi tehtävästään, ja hänen tilalleen tuli Nabi Abdullaev, entinen Moscow Timesin toimittaja, uutistoimittaja, päätoimittaja ja apulaispäätoimittaja, joka oli lähtenyt vuonna 2011 RIA Novostin johtajaksi. vieraskielinen uutispalvelu. Pian nimityksensä jälkeen Abdullaev väitti The Guardianissa (siis siinä brittipl ärässä), että lännen "puoluellinen journalismi...ryystää länneltä sen moraalisen auktoriteetin". Syksyllä 2015 Abdullaev erotettiin virastaan, ja hänen tilalleen nimitettiin Mikhail Fishyman, Russky Newsweekin entinen johtaja.
ellauri331.html on line 357: Novaja Gazeta julkaisi 26. marraskuuta 2001 Oleg Lurien artikkelin, jossa todettiin, että Sergei Pugatšovin johtaman International Industrial Bankin johto oli sekaantunut rahanpesuun Bank of New Yorkissa. Pugatsjovin pankki nosti sanomalehteä vastaan kunnianloukkauskanteen vedoten taloudellisiin menetyksiin, koska useiden sen asiakkaiden väitettiin muuttaneen tiliensä ehtoja tavalla, joka sai pankin menettämään rahaa julkaisun takia. Pankki voitti 28. helmikuuta 2002 oikeudenkäynnin Moskovan Basmannin kunnanoikeudessa ja sai 15 miljoonan rupl an (noin 500 000 dollarin) tulonmenetyksen, ennennäkemättömän summan venäläisille sanomalehdille, joka saattoi heikentää Novaja Gazetan olemassaoloa, varsinkin kun 22. helmikuuta sama Basmanny-tuomioistuin määräsi Novaya Gazetan maksamaan noin miljoona dollaria Krasnodarin alueen korkeinta tuomaria vastaan esitetystä korruptioepäilystä. Huhtikuussa tuomioistuin vahvisti päätöksen International Industrial Bankin tapauksessa uudelleen. Kuitenkin 27. toukokuuta 2002 päivätyssä artikkelissa Novaja Gazetan toimittaja Julia Latynina paljasti, että kanteessa mainitut pankin kolme asiakasta olivat sen tytäryhtiöitä tai muuten sen hallituksen määräysvallassa, ja väitti, että Novaja Gazeta oli pyytänyt rikostutkinnan aloittaminen pankin toiminnasta. Tämän seurauksena International Industrial Bank luopui kesäkuussa 2002 korvausvaatimuksestaan.
ellauri331.html on line 361: 25. heinäkuuta 2014 lehti avattiin sanoilla "Vergeef ons, Nederland" / "Прости, Голландия" ("Anteeksi meille, Alankomaat" sekä hollanniksi että venäjäksi) vastauksena Malaysia Airlinesin lennon 17 katastrofiin. Sitten oli tää emävale sinivalaasta, izemurha"haasteesta" Vittu että noi netti"haasteet" jaxaa vituttaa. "Sinivalas" nousi ensimmäisen kerran uutisiin toukokuussa 2016 venäläisen Novaja Gazeta -sanomalehden artikkelissa, joka yhdisti monet toisiinsa liittymättömät lasten itsemurhat venäläisen VK - sosiaalisen verkoston "F57"-ryhmään kuulumiseen. Moraalisen paniikin aalto pyyhkäisi Venäjää. Myöhemmin pl ärää kritisoitiin siitä, että se yritti luoda syy-yhteyden siellä, missä sellaista ei ollut, eikä yhdenkään itsemurhan havaittu olevan seurausta ryhmätoiminnasta. Peliin liittyvistä itsemurhaväitteistä on raportoitu maailmanlaajuisesti, mutta yhtäkään ei ole vahvistettu. Eli jälleen 1 ankka tältä rähmäpl ärältä. Komsomolskaja Pravdan aikana ei tällästä pelleilyä oisi siedetty. Kaverit olisi pantu seinää vasten ja ammuttu.
ellauri331.html on line 387: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/56/IAC_Panorama_%2850165435503%29.jpg/440px-IAC_Panorama_%2850165435503%29.jpg" />
ellauri331.html on line 396: The Interceptin toinen perustaja Glenn Greenwald kritisoi The Daily Beastia Brooksin doxaamisestä eli henkilöllisyyden paljastamisesta ja sanoi Twitterissä, että "oli vastenmielistä vapauttaa suuren uutiskanavan resurssit hämärän, nimettömän, voimattoman, lähes työttömän kansalaisen rikoksesta. vähäpätöisintä vaikutusvaltaisimpien poliittisten johtajien pilkkaamista." Toinen kriitikko huomautti, että "Kukaan pl aneetalla ei ole koskaan ajatellut, että desinformaatio on vain Venäjän toimiala,, vaan myös itsensä ylentävien, hölmöjen napsautuxia jahtaavien Daily Beast -toimittajien." Shachtman puolusti artikkelia, osoittaen olevansa izensä ylentävä, hölmö napsautuxia jahtaava gonzo journalisti.
ellauri331.html on line 486: Vuodesta 2011 lähtien virastosta on tullut epäsuosittu Turkmenistanissa. Turkmenistanin ulkoministeriön jakamassa raportissa Turkmenistanin dipl omaatit ilmaisivat toistuvasti vastenmielisyytensä virastoa kohtaan väittäen, että se levittää järjestelmällisesti epätarkkoja ja puolueellisia tietoja heidän maastaan. Joulukuussa 2016 Valko-Venäjällä pidätettiin kolme REGNUM-toimittajaa, joita syytettiin "valko-Venäjän ja Venäjän kansojen välisen vihamielisyyden lietsomisesta", ääriliikkeistä ja kielteisistä arvioista Aleksanteri Lukašenkon hallituksen harjoittaman Valko-Venäjän politiikan suhteen. Valko-Venäjän kansalaiset Dmitri Alimkin, Juri Pavlovets ja Sergei Shiptenko viettivät 14 kuukautta tutkintavankeudessa nro 1. Helmikuussa 2018 heidät tuomittiin pykälän 3 momentin nojalla viideksi vuodeksi vankeuteen. Valko-Venäjän rikoslain 130 pykälä, "ekstremismi" kolmen vuoden rangaistuksella ja kiellolla lähteä Valko-Venäjältä. No ei nyt Valko-Venäjä, tshort vazmi!
ellauri331.html on line 493: Uutistoimisto Novostilla oli pl aku Merikatu 3:n portaikossa ja A-rapun vieressä. Siellä asui joku onnellinen Novostin Suomen agentti. Mikähän se oli nimeltään?
ellauri331.html on line 526: Roskomnadzor uhkasi 1. maaliskuuta 2022 estää pääsyn venäläiseen Wikipediaan artikkelin " Вторжение России на Украину (2022) " ("Venäjän hyökkäys Ukrainaan (2022)") takia väittäen, että artikkeli sisälsi "laittomasti levitettyä tietoa" mukaan lukien. lukuisista uhreista Venäjän federaation palveluhenkilöstön ja myös Ukrainan siviiliväestön keskuudessa, mukaan lukien lapset. Roskomnadzor uhkasi samankaltaisia 31. maaliskuuta ja vaati Wikipediaa poistamaan kaikki tiedot hyökkäyksestä, jotka "vituttavat" venäläisiä, tai se voi saada jopa 4 miljoonan rupl an ( noin 49 000 dollarin ) sakon.
ellauri331.html on line 528: Vuoden 2020 puolivälissä Roskomnadzor luopui virallisesti yrittämästä estää Telegrammia. Nyze toimii hyvänä korvikkeena Teslakaverin "X"älle. 26. helmikuuta 2022 Venäjän Ukrainaan miehityksen jälkeen Twitter ilmoitti, että pääsy alustalle on rajoitettu joihinkin käyttäjiin Venäjällä. 1. maaliskuuta Roskomnadzor hidasti jälleen pääsyä Twitteriin ja syytti yritystä siitä, että se ei ole poistanut "erikoisoperaatiota" koskevia "valeviestejä". 28. huhtikuuta 2022 Twitter sai 3 miljoonan rupl an (41 000 dollarin) sakon Roskomnadzorin haastattua sen oikeuteen, koska se ei poistanut sisältöä, joka sisälsi ohjeita molotov-cocktailien valmistukseen ja käyttämiseen venäläisiä panssaroituja ajoneuvoja vastaan.
ellauri331.html on line 532: Huhtikuussa 2022 Roskomnadzor määräsi Googlelle yli 7 miljardin rupl an (94 miljoonan dollarin) sakon, koska se ei poistanut YouTubesta laitonta sisältöä. Maxoikohan kukaan noita sakkoja? Varmaan lällättivät vaan.
ellauri331.html on line 534: Roskomnadzor laati huhtikuussa 2022 pöytäkirjan, ja Moskovan tuomioistuin määräsi TikTokille kahden miljoonan rupl an (27 000 dollarin) sakon, koska se ei poistanut LGBT-yhteisöön liittyvää sisältöä.
ellauri331.html on line 557: Vuonna 2015 Rossiya Segondya sai valtion budjetista 6,48 miljardia rupl aa. Vuosina 2022–2024 RT saa 82 miljardia rupl aa. Hizi sehän on Ylen rahoituxen luokkaa. Ylen rahoitus perustuu Yle-lakiin, ja kunkin vuoden rahamäärä vahvistetaan vuosittain yleisen kustannustason muutokseen peilaten. Ylen rahoitus oli viime vuonna (2022) 557 miljoonaa euroa, verojen jälkeen 506 miljoonaa euroa. Mitäs jos ei olisikaan enää YLEä? Hehe?
ellauri331.html on line 576: Syyskuussa 2017 RT America määrättiin rekisteröitymään ulkomaan agentiksi Yhdysvaltain oikeusministeriössä Foreign Agents Registration Actin mukaisesti. RT kiellettiin Ukrainassa vuonna 2014, kun Venäjä annexoi Krimin; Latvia ja Liettua panivat samanlaiset kiellot käyttöön vuonna 2020. Saksa kielsi RT DE:n helmikuussa 2022. Venäjän Ukrainaan miehityksen aikana Euroopan unioni ja Kanada kielsivät virallisesti RT:n ja riippumattomat palveluntarjoajat. 10 maata keskeytti RT-lähetykset. Sosiaalisen median verkkosivustot, joita seuraa ulkoisten linkkien estäminen RT:n verkkosivustolle ja pääsyn rajoittaminen RT:n sisältöön. Microsoft poisti RT:n sovelluskaupastaan ja poisti heidän hakutuloksistaan Bingissä, kun taas Appl e poisti RT-sovelluksen kaikista maista Venäjää lukuun ottamatta. Hehe. Osataan sitä sensuroida meilläkin dämitall, muttei sentään omaan jalkaan ammuta.
ellauri331.html on line 598: Facebook, Instagram ja TikTok poistivat RT:n ja Sputnikin sosiaalisen median sisällön Euroopan unionin käyttäjien saatavilla 28. helmikuuta. Microsoft poisti RT:n ja Sputnikin MSN:stä, Microsoft Storesta ja Microsoft Advertising -verkostosta samana päivänä. YouTube kielsi 1. maaliskuuta pääsyn kaikille RT- ja Sputnik-kanaville alustallaan Euroopassa (mukaan lukien Isossa-Britanniassa). Appl e poisti sen jälkeen RT:n ja Sputnikin App Storestaan kaikissa maissa paitsi Venäjällä. Joku "Roku" pudotti RT-sovelluksen kanavakaupastaan, kun taas DirecTV poisti RT American kanavavalikoimastaan. Uruguayn kansallinen televiestintähallinto ilmoitti 1. maaliskuuta RT:n poistamisesta Antel TV:n suoratoistoalustalta. Uuden-Seelannin satelliittitelevisiotoimittaja Sky poisti myös RT:n asiakkaiden valituksiin ja Broadcasting Standards Authorityn kuulemiseen vedoten. Reddit esti uudet lähtevät linkit RT:hen ja Sputnikiin 3. maaliskuuta. YouTube esti RT:n ja Sputnikin maailmanlaajuisesti 11. maaliskuuta. Kanadan radio-televisio- ja televiestintäkomissio kielsi 16. maaliskuuta alkaen virallisesti RT:n ja RT Francen jakeluun valtuutettujen muiden kuin kanadalaisten ohjelmapalveluiden luettelosta.
ellauri331.html on line 646: ploads/goltz.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri331.html on line 698: Varastettujen sähköpostien julkaisemisen jälkeen NSA:n ilmiantaja Edward Snowden kritisoi WikiLeaksia sen laajasta tietovuodosta ja kirjoitti, että "heidän vihamielisyys jopa vaatimatonta kuratointia kohtaan on virhe". Vittu Snowden oli vain kade Assangelle. Washington Post asetti vastakkain WikiLeaksin käytäntöjen ja Snowdenin NSA:ta koskevien tietojen paljastamisen välisen eron: vaikka Snowden työskenteli toimittajien kanssa tarkistaakseen asiakirjoja (joitakin salassa, jos se vaarantaisi kansallisen turvallisuuden), WikiLeaksin "radikaalimpi" lähestymistapa sisältää polkumyynnin. "valtavista, haettavissa olevista online-välimuistista, jossa on vain vähän – jos ollenkaan - ilmeisiä yrityksiä poistaa arkaluonteisia henkilökohtaisia tietoja". Washington Postin kolumnisti Anne Appl ebaum (jutku taas) kuvasi yksityiskohtaisesti muita Venäjän epävakautuskampanjoita Itä-Euroopan maissa.
ellauri332.html on line 27:
Jar-Jar Bling play:none">Kinefiliaa
ellauri332.html on line 45: Narsistisuuden puute heijastuu huonona itsetuntona, joka ilmenee henkilöä jatkuvasti riivaavana huonommuuden tunteena. Tollasena Adlerin tunnistamana alemmuuskompl exina.
ellauri332.html on line 80: pland.fi/loader.aspx?id=ad5ba00e-2ca4-4af5-93fd-210c26a6ae10" />
ellauri332.html on line 167: Kun elokuvaan sisältyy kolme erillistä aikajunaa, "The Fountain" on varmasti hämmentävä. Tämä vuoden 2006 Buttin postmodernin kusilaariin perustuva elokuva sai katsojat vaatimaan selitystä monille hämmentäviä elementtejä nähdessään sen ensimmäisen kerran. Ohjaaja Maxim Gorki kuitenkin kieltäytyi pilaamasta elokuvan symboliikkaa antamalla selkeää selitystä. Hän sanoi: "Se on elokuva, joka on matka, ja se on matka, ja se on kokemus monien näiden kysymysten meditaation aikana." Jos katsot elokuvaa tuon sepustuxen läpi, voit nähdä, että siinä on kyse pl örinästä, jolla sovitaan oman kuolevaisuuden kanssa.
ellauri332.html on line 173: Kellonvärinen apl ari [oli hirvee paska]
ellauri332.html on line 336: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/46/Kate_Upton_and_Harley_Upton_crop.png/330px-Kate_Upton_and_Harley_Upton_crop.png" height="400px" />
ellauri332.html on line 337: ploads/posts/2022-02/thumbs/1645216634_51-titis-org-p-kate-upton-nudes-erotika-56.jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri332.html on line 380: Ellet elänyt kiven alla vuosina 2008–2021, "Twilight"-saaga soittaa sinulle kelloa. Kenelle kellot soivat kelle ei. Lukioon sijoittuva vampyyrin rakkaustarina ei vain rypisti höyheniä sen vuoksi, että se on lajitteleva, vaan myös siksi, että se romantisoi valtavan... ikäeron Bellan ja Edwardin välillä. Höh, melko huolestuttava 87 vuoden ikäero tarkemmin. Mutta Edwardin valtava muna on yhä salamannopea ja hampaat terävinä Bellan niskassa.Tämä oli amerikkalaisittain erityisen huolestuttavaa, koska franchising-ryhmän pääkohdeyleisö koostui huutavista tweensistä, joilla on vielä isän antamat pl edgesormuxet. Bella ei kyllä ole mikään missi, tisutkin sillä on kuin kuhmuiset omenat. Voisi sitä silti pikasesti vetästä.
ellauri332.html on line 382: ploads/2021/11/Kristen-Stewart-Nude-Leaked-Naked-Porn-21-413x550.jpg" />
ellauri332.html on line 387: ploads/cmg_images/499740/rid_c80ce231aacc79413c466f76c3861cce/sex-and-the-city-2_8fa1a466-scaled.jpg.pro-cmg.jpg" />
ellauri332.html on line 397: ploads/cmg_images/499740/rid_e4feace12a719181d3a27a8ad608597a/the-scarlet-letter_LiD3em-scaled.jpg.pro-cmg.jpg" />
ellauri332.html on line 402: In 17th-century Salem, Hester Prynne must wear a scarlet A because she is an adulteress, with a child out of wedlock. For seven years, she has refused to name the father. A vigorous older stranger arrives, recognized by Hester but unknown to others as her missing husband. He poses as Chillingworth, a doctor, watching Hester and searching out the identity of her lover. His eye soon rests on Dimmesdale, a young overwrought pastor. Enmity grows between the two men; Chillingworth appl ies psychological pressure, and the pastor begins to crack. A ship stops in Salem, and Hester sees it as a providential refuge for her daughter, herself, and her lover. But will Dimmesdale flee with her? Or without perhaps?
ellauri332.html on line 434: Täh? Buahaha! Gotcha! Ruodittavana onkin jonkun Joffen 1995 "romanttinen" Hollywood versio Hawthornen sepustuxesta! Eikä Wimin onneton 1973 pl äjäys. Sitä ei varmaan jenkeissä edes näytetty. LOL!
ellauri332.html on line 451: A lumpy mélange of naturalism and melodrama, German and Spanish and Russian pl ayers bumping into one another, a score like a pile of bricks.
ellauri332.html on line 468: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/3/39/The_Interview_kansi.jpeg/500px-The_Interview_kansi.jpeg" />
ellauri332.html on line 496: ploads/cmg_images/499740/rid_586e3d04f39ab142cc4920089e123f5e/fantastic-beasts-and-where-to-find-them_ap83u9-scaled.jpg.pro-cmg.jpg" />
ellauri332.html on line 513: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dc/US_Navy_050520-N-0780F-008_Storekeeper_First_Class_Lonnie_Campton%2C_assigned_to_USS_Taylor_%28FFG_50%29%2C_serves_as_color_guard_for_the_American_flag_during_the_opening_ceremony_of_the_North_Atlantic_Council_%28NAC%29_and_the_Military_Co.jpg/550px-thumbnail.jpg" >
ellauri332.html on line 522: ploads/2017/04/Megan-Fox-Nude-Sex-1.jpg" />
ellauri332.html on line 530: ploads/cmg_images/499740/rid_68dca96573d862fd811b1a7b6284b00e/E9W77K-The-Most-Breathtaking-Things-Seen-In-Space-cooper-interstellar-scaled.jpg.pro-cmg.jpg" />
ellauri332.html on line 535: Vähäisen polttoainemäärän vuoksi Cooper ja Brand käyttävät Gargantuaa painovoimalinkona päästäkseen Edmundsin pl aneettalle, mutta mustan aukon läheisyyden vuoksi he menettävät jälleen 51 vuotta. Cooper ja TARS irtautuvat Endurancelta omissa kapseleissaan Gargantuan ytimeen, jossa kaksikko päätyy äärettömän tesseraktin (tämä ihme on takuulla förbitty Sikiön Wallulta) sisälle. Cooper ymmärtää rakennelman olevan kaukaisen tulevaisuuden ihmisten luoma. Hän siirtyy ajassa taaksepäin, jolloin hän näkee Murphin lapsuudenhuoneeseen kirjahyllyn läpi ja huomaa voivansa vaikuttaa rajallisesti huoneen painovoimaan. Hän siirtyy ajassa eteenpäin ja löytää aikuisen Murphin tutkimasta vanhaa huonettaan. Cooper lähettää Murphille datan, jonka TARS on kerännyt tapahtumahorisontin sisäpuolelta, morsettamalla sen hänelle huoneeseen jättämänsä rannekellon sekuntiviisarin avulla. Tästä näperryxestä tesserakti romahtaa. Myöhemmin Cooper herää Saturnusta kiertävässä avaruussiirtokunnassa. Hän tapaa vanhuuteen kuolemaisillaan olevan tyttärensä. Murph oli onnistunut Cooperin lähettämien tietojen avulla suorittamaan loppuun Brandin laskelmat ja ratkaisemaan painovoimapropulsioteorian. Tämän ansiosta tähtien välisen matkustamisen hallitseva ihmiskunta voitiin evakuoida tuhoutuvalta pl aneetalta. Murph muistuttaa Cooperia siitä, että Amelia on yksin CASEn kanssa Edmundsin pl aneetalla. Cooper ja TARS lähtevät kohti Edmundsin pl aneettaa, jossa ilkialasti ilman avaruuspukua kävelevä Amelia valmistautuu Adam-nimisen apinan kaa uuden siirtokunnan perustamiseen.
ellauri332.html on line 610: Esiosa-trilogiaa luodessaan George Lucas ei alun perin aikonut esitellä sarjakuvahahmoa, mutta hänen poikansa "Jett" ehdotti tuloksena olevan synkän ja poliittisen trilogian "laimentamista" hahmolla, joka ainakin osittain kompensoisi Hanin huumorin menetystä. Lucas, joka on saanut inspiraationsa yhdestä poikansa suosikkisarjakuvahahmoista, Disneyn Goofysta , luo pitkän (1,96 m) gunganin, jolla on pitkät korvat ja varrelliset silmät ja joka muistuttaa antropomorfoitua hadrosaurusta tai vesinokkaeläintä, ja "Jett" keksii hänelle nimen - Jar Jar Binks. Ulkonäköä viimeisteli kuvittaja Terril Whipl atch.
ellauri332.html on line 612: The Phantom Menacen kuvausten aikana Lucas ja Best työskentelivät yhdessä hahmon kehittämiseksi. Joten he "lainasivat" kävelynsä Charlie Chapl inilta, käyttäytymismallinsa Buster Keatonilta; yhdessä he kirjoittivat joitain hahmon rivejä ja myöhemmin keksivät Binksin kömpelyyden ja typeryyden näytöllä. Liikekaappauksen avulla Best pystyi luomaan komediahahmon, jonka hän alun perin kuvitteli; hänet äänesti myös Best. Best käytti Jar Jaria edustavaa proteettista pukua, joka maksoi noin 100 000 dollaria, ja se toimi vertailukohtana animaattoreille ja taiteilijoille, joiden kanssa he voivat olla vuorovaikutuksessa.
ellauri332.html on line 620: Jo ennen "The Phantom Menace" -jakson julkaisua Jar Jar tuli melko vakavan median ja yleisön huomion kohteeksi. Näin ollen Brent Stapl es New York Timesista uskoo, että gungan ”kävelee kuin parittaja. Binks on ylivoimaisesti elokuvan tyhmin hahmo", ja hänen yksinkertainen omistautuminen "valkoisille" jedimestareilleen muistutti ihmisiä Hollywoodin loukkaavimmista rodullisista stereotypioista; Slaten David Edelstein kutsui Binksiä " pullisesilmäiseksi, miehen kokoiseksi dinosaurukseksi, joka puhuu Länsi-Intian slangia " ja Eric Harrison Los Angeles Timesista vertasi Binksiä Stepin Fetchitin virheelliseen parodiaan. Harrison panee merkille Pohjois-Amerikan katsojien ennennäkemättömän suuttumuksen tämän hahmon suhteen: erityisesti luotiin verkkosivusto jarjarmustdie.com ("Jar Jar Must Die") , joka kerää fanien ääniä vetoaakseen Lucasfilmiin ja pyytää tappamaan Binks. Vanity Fairin Bruce Handy kirjoitti, että Jar Jarista "on tullut symboli siitä, mitä monet fanit pitävät esiosa-trilogian puutteina: hahmot, joista kukaan ei välitä; huumorintaju, joka on suunnattu yleisön nuorimmille ajatteleville jäsenille; liiallinen riippuvuus tietokonegrafiikasta; ja juonilinjat, jotka käsittelevät monimutkaisia poliittisia juonitteluja , jotka olisivat sopimattomia: I, Claudius tai Kolmannen valtakunnan nousu ja tuho -sovituksissa , mutta sopivat elokuviin, joissa on hahmoja kuten Jar Jar Binks." Kate Phipps The A.V. Clubista totesi, että Binks oli kiusallisesti kirjoitettu elokuvaan, jonka olisi voinut tehdä ilman gungania, joka tarjoaisi koomista helpotusta pääjuonelle, mutta sen sijaan hän "pilaa melkein jokaisen kohtauksen, jossa hän avaa suunsa."
ellauri332.html on line 640: Ikoninen linja ”Olkoon voima kanssasi” juontaa myös juurensa juutalaisuudesta. Ilmaus "Shalom Aleichem", joka tarkoittaa "rauha olkoon sinulle", on yleinen juutalainen tervehdys, joka on hengeltään samanlainen kuin "Olkoon Voima kanssasi". Molemmat välittävät tunteen toivottaa jollekin hyvää ja vetoaa korkeampaan voimaan ohjaamaan ja suojelemaan häntä. Aivan toiselta pl aneetalta kuin vaippapäiden "Ähläm sähläm."
ellauri332.html on line 673: ploads/2023/01/cury-livros.png" height="300px" />
ellauri332.html on line 674: ploads/2016/10/cena-do-trailer-de-o-vendedor-de-sonhos.jpg?quality=90&strip=info&w=680&h=453&crop=1&resize=382,254" height="300px" />
ellauri332.html on line 684: 2. osassa "Unenvälittäjä - Nimetön vallankumous Unenmyyjä, Mestari, jatkaa yhteiskunnan kääntämistä ylösalaisin. Kärsittyään peruuttamattomia menetyksiä (blondi trofeevaimo pl us sminkattu pikkupillu tyttärensä räjähtävät smithereeneixi lentokentällä) ja nähtyään "maailman romahduksen" (Abraham Lincoln Carnegie Mellonin osakkeet romahtivat, mutta vain hetkexi) tämä salaperäinen mies yrittää rakentaa oman elämänsä uudelleen myymällä unelmia. Tämä osa näyttää kuinka jokaisen ihmisen polku on monimutkainen, kirjoitettu kyyneleillä ja ilolla; rauhallisuus ja ahdistus; järkeä ja hulluutta, aatetta jaloa ja alhaista mieltä, Tunteiden paloa ja kylmyyttä sieltä. Syömmestä pienestä löytyä voi. Paljon min kohtalo soi. Niin pieni ihmissydän on.
ellauri332.html on line 706: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/94/King_David%2C_the_King_of_Israel.jpg/731px-King_David%2C_the_King_of_Israel.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 27: Mlecch play:none">Koprolaliaa
ellauri333.html on line 28: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/01/Khalsi_rock_edict_of_Ashoka_with_names_of_the_Greek_kings.jpg/440px-Khalsi_rock_edict_of_Ashoka_with_names_of_the_Greek_kings.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri333.html on line 53: Kaippa ton andamaaneille sijoitetun netclicks-sarjan opetus on ettei kunnon hindun pidä mennä merta edemmäxi kalaan. Bharata on itäinkkarille aivan riittävä. Eikä pidä olla eriseurainen vaan ottaa osaa tiimikokouxiin. Tottelemattomalle sikhille kävikin kohta kalpaten. Kalautti päänsä kiveen kaikuvasti kuten vähän aikasemmin norjalaisskotti Annikan vainoama paki ovenkamanaan. Ketan Kamat on se luihu poliisi, joka juonipaljastusten mukaan "is on the path to become a better man and working for the peopl e of the island instead of being a sell-out" rakastuttuaan Rituun, sikhitohtorin uuteen apulaiseen, joka kexii curen nikotuxeen. Varmaan se on se lehdetön kasvi kukkaruukussa jota taxikuskin äiti toiveikkaasti kasteli vaikka pojat naureskelivat. Sen pojat ehtivät kyllä kuolla nikotuxeen ensixi. Mallikarjun kamalapalli tulee tästä sarjasta ezimättä mieleen. Sanna Marin esimerkixi on nuori mutiainen rähmällään lattialla hikipaidassa aakkostamassa jotain papereita. Buahaha.
ellauri333.html on line 61: Given Ashoka's particularly moral definition of "Dharma" it is possible that he simpl y wants to say that buddhist virtue and piety now exist from the Mediterranean to the south of India. An expansion of Buddhism to the West is unconfirmed historically. Valehteli raukka nälissään. The edicts put forward moral rules which are extremely short, aphoristic expressions, the subjects being discussed, the vocabulary itself, are all hardly worth an elephant turd. Ashoka used the expression Dhaṃma Lipi (Prakrit in the Brahmi script: 𑀥𑀁𑀫𑀮𑀺𑀧𑀺, "Inscriptions of the Dharma") to describe his own Edicts. According to the edicts, the extent of Buddhist proselytism during this period reached as far as the Mediterranean, and many Buddhist monuments were created.
ellauri333.html on line 65: The word Mleccha was commonly used for foreign 'barbarians of whatever race or colour' [purification needed]. As a mleccha, any foreigner stood outside the caste system and the ritual ambience. Thus, historically, contact with them was viewed by the Hindu as menstruating and polluting. The Mleccha peopl e were Sakas, Hunas, Yavanas, Kambojas, Pahlavas, Bahlikas and Rishikas. The Kiratas, Khas, Indo-Greeks, Pulindas, Gurjara, Scythians, Kushanas and Arabs were also mlecchas. Blaah, yecch.
ellauri333.html on line 67: The Sanskrit word occurs as a verb mlecchati for the first time in the latic Vedic text Śathapatha‐Brāhmana dated to around 700 BCE. It is taken to mean "to speak indistinctly or barbarously". Brahmins are prohibited from speaking in this fashion. As mleccha does not have an Indo-European etymology, scholars infer that it must have been a self-designation of a non-Aryan peopl e within India. Based on the geographic references to the Mleccha deśa (Mleccha country) to the west, the term is identified with the Indus peopl e, whose land is known from the Sumerian texts as Meluḫḫa. Asko Parpola has proposed a Dravidian derivation for "Meluḫḫa", as mel-akam ("high country", a possible reference to the Balochistan high lands). Not very likely. Wettenhovi-Aspan nehashkushilta kuulostaa Askon selitys (neekerit haisevat kuselta). Some suggest that the Indo-Aryans used an onomatopoeic sound to imitate the harshness of alien tongue and to indicate incomprehension, thus coming up with "mleccha". Bar, bar! koittaa yhdet sanoa. Mleccha? ihmettelee toiset. Nemetskit seuraa vierestä huuli pyöreänä.
ellauri333.html on line 69: Sanskrit was believed to include all the sounds necessary for communication. Early Indo-Aryans would therefore dismiss other languages as foreign tongue, "mleccha bhasha". As the Sanskrit word itself suggests, "mlecchas" were those whose speech was alien. "Correct speech" was a crucial component of being able to take part in the appropriate yajnas (religious rituals and sacrifices). Thus, without correct speech, one could not hope to practice correct religion, either. Parhaiten ääntelevät keon päällä herrastelevat bramiinit. Brahmanical system engineers took great pains to ensure that peopl es of the Brahmanical system did not subscribe to any mleccha customs or rituals. Medieval Hindu literature, such as that of Chaitanya Mahaprabhu, also uses the term to refer to those of larger groups of other religions, especially Muslims.
ellauri333.html on line 71: Muut kuin oikein ääntelevät arjalaiset oli barbaareja. The word mleccha emerged as a way for the ancient Hindus to classify those who did not subscribe to the "traditional value system," Early writings refer to these foreign peopl es as "half-civilized, unconverted peopl e who rise or eat at improper times." Mlecchas drank alcohol, ate cow flesh, which was strictly forbidden to a follower of Hindu orthopraxy, and believed in false gods. Swami Parmeshwaranand states the mleccha tribe was born from the tail end of the celestial cow Nandini, The mlecchas drove angered elephants. Olipa ozaa tälläkin mutakuonolla. Vitun mamuja.
ellauri333.html on line 73: According to another belief in the pre-modern India, the Kala Pani (sea water) was inhabited by the mowglis, bad spirits and monsters. However, not all Hindus adhered to the proscription, so as to gain monetary wealth. For instance, Hindu merchants were present in Burma, Muscat, and other pl aces around Asia and Africa. The East India Company recruited several upper-case soldiers, and adapted its military practices to the requirements of their religious rituals. Consequently, the overseas service, considered polluting to their caste, was not required of them. The General Service Enlistment Act of 1856 required the new recruits to serve overseas if asked. The serving high-caste sepoys were fearful that this requirement would be eventually extended to them.[12] Thus, the Hindu soldiers viewed the Act as a potential threat to their faith. The resulting discontent was one of the causes of the Indian rebellion of 1857. The Cellular Jail was known as Kala Pani, as the overseas journey to the Andaman islands threatened the convicts with the loss of caste, resulting in social exclusion.
ellauri333.html on line 79: The Kala Pani theme features prominently in the Indo-Caribbean history, and has been elaborately discussed in the writings of V. S. Naipaul. Ashoka oli proselyytti buddhisti. Ashoka also states that he sent emissaries to the West to transmit medical care and medicinal pl ants (Major Rock Edict No.2). We do not know what the influence of these emissaries was on the Greek world. Most likely null. Barbaarit varmaan mätki niitä takaraivoon ja vei Ketan kamat.
ellauri333.html on line 81: These inscriptions proclaim Ashoka's adherence to the Buddhist philosophy. The inscriptions show his efforts to develop the Buddhist dhamma throughout his kingdom. Although Buddhism as well as Gautama Buddha are mentioned, the edicts focus on social and moral precepts rather than specific religious practices or the philosophical dimension of Buddhism. These were located in public pl aces and were meant for peopl e to read.
ellauri333.html on line 85: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/Brahmi_script_consonants_according_to_James_Prinsep_March_1838.jpg/800px-Brahmi_script_consonants_according_to_James_Prinsep_March_1838.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 88: Kyyros Suuri haapl asi arameaa, se oli akhaimenidipersian virallinen kieli. Eeli Eeli laama sabakhthaani? Heprealaiset oli ikikiitollisia Kyyroxelle joka vapautti ne kaxoisvirran maan orjuudesta.
ellauri333.html on line 93: Ceylonese sources state that Ashoka succeeded his father Bindusara 314 years after Buddha's Nirvana and that his anointment took pl ace four years after his father's death, or 218 years after the Nirvana. The Burmese tradition confirms the two dates 214 and 218. The traditional date of the Nirvana is 544 B.C. Various devices were proposed in order to account for this chronological error, until Fleet showed that the Buddha-varsha of 544 B. C. is a comparatively modern fabrication, of the twelfth century, and that the difference of about sixty years is the quite natural result of the buddhists bungling it again.
ellauri333.html on line 119: Patna (/ˈpætnə, ˈpʌt-/ Hindi: [ˈpəʈnaː] ⓘ), historically known as Pataliputra, is the capital and largest city of the state of Bihar in India. According to the United Nations, as of 2018, Patna had a population of 2.35 million, making it the 19th largest city in India. Covering 250 square kilometres (97 sq mi) and over 2.5 million peopl e, its urban agglomeration is the 18th largest in India. Patna also serves as the seat of Patna High Court. The Buddhist, Hindu and Jain pilgrimage centres of Vaishali, Rajgir, Nalanda, Bodh Gaya and Pawapuri are nearby and Patna City is a sacred city for Sikhs as the tenth Sikh Guru, Guru Gobind Singh was born here. The modern city of Patna is mainly on the southern bank of the river Ganges. The city also straddles the rivers Sone, Gandak and Punpun. The city is approximately 35 kilometres (22 mi) in length and 16 to 18 kilometres (9.9 to 11.2 mi) wide.
ellauri333.html on line 121: One of the oldest continuously inhabited pl aces in the world, Patna was founded in 490 BCE by the king of Magadha. Ancient Patna, known as Pataliputra, was the capital of the Magadha Empire throughout the Haryanka, Nanda, Mauryan, Shunga, Gupta, and Pala dynasties. Pataliputra was a seat of learning and fine arts. It was home to many astronomers and scholars including Aryabhata, Vātsyāyana and Chanakya. During the Maurya period (around 300 BCE) its population was about 400,000. Patna served as the seat of power, and political and cultural centre of the Indian subcontinent during the Maurya and Gupta empires. With the fall of the Gupta Empire, Patna lost its glory. The British revived it again in the 17th century as a centre of international trade. Following the partition of Bengal presidency in 1912, Patna became the capital of Bihar and Orissa Province.
ellauri333.html on line 125: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/28/Ashoka%27s_visit_to_the_Ramagrama_stupa_Sanchi_Stupa_1_Southern_gateway.jpg/570px-Ashoka%27s_visit_to_the_Ramagrama_stupa_Sanchi_Stupa_1_Southern_gateway.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 128: From Indian literature we know that at all times kings used to entertain spies {chara or gudha-purusha). These agents were graded into high ones, low ones, and those of middle rank. A similar class of officers, which was created by Asoka himself, were the reporters (prativedaka), who were posted everywhere, as he says, in order to report to me the affairs of the peopl e at any time, while I am eating, in the harem, in the inner apartment, even at the cowpen, in the palanquin, and in the parks.
ellauri333.html on line 141: The rock-edicts repeat or ampl ify the same injunctions:
ellauri333.html on line 160: Among Anoka's 'good deeds' the second pillar-edict (E) gives prominence to various benefits conferred on animals. This statement is expl ained by the fifth pillaredict, which contains a detailed list of animals that were declared inviolable either permanently or on certain days, among them the well-known fast-days. Ei se silti ollut mikään jainalainen, vaan päinvastoin tapatti ahimsajäbiä tuhatmäärin vääräoppisuudesta (kz alempana).
ellauri333.html on line 167: Devanampriya desires towards all beings abstention from hurting, self-control, impartiality in violence. He requests his descendants that they ' should not think that a fresh conquest ought to be made, that if a conquest does pl ease them they should take pl easure in mercy and light punishments, and that they should regard the conquest by morality as the only conquest.' (section X).
ellauri333.html on line 169: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/99/Kanaganahalli_inscribed_panel_portraying_Asoka_%28perspective%29.jpg/440px-Kanaganahalli_inscribed_panel_portraying_Asoka_%28perspective%29.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 188: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Nava_Jetavana_Templ e_-_Shravasti_-_014_King_Asoka_at_the_Third_Council_%289241725897%29.jpg/800px-Nava_Jetavana_Templ e_-_Shravasti_-_014_King_Asoka_at_the_Third_Council_%289241725897%29.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 191: Seuraavaksi Ashoka lähetti Matkaliputta-Tissarrin pl us buddhalaisia lähetyssaarnaajia kaukaisille alueille, kuten Kashmiriin, Gandharaan, Himalajalle, Yonsien (kreikkalaisten) maahan, Maharashtraan, Suvannabhumiin ja Sri Lankaan. Theravada-kouluun kuuluvat Sri Lankan kronikat kyllä liioittelevat Matkaliputta-Tissarrin roolia lahkonsa ylistämiseksi. Sitä Asoka ei pitänyt hyvänä (kz. yllä).
ellauri333.html on line 205: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6f/Asoka%27s_Queen.jpg/440px-Asoka%27s_Queen.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 219: According to Philip Ludendorf, an American Indologist, the theological significance of Hanuman and devotional dedication to him emerged about 1,000 years after the composition of the Ramayana, in the 2nd millennium CE, with the arrival of Islamic rule in the Indian subcontinent. Ludendorf also writes that the skills in Hanuman's resume also seem to derive in part from his windy patrimony, reflecting Vayu's role in both body and cosmos. Vayu is an important deity and is closely associated with Indra, the king of gods. He is mentioned to be born from the breath of Supreme Being Vishvapurusha and also the first one to drink Soma. Soma oli todnäk piriä. Zarathustra joi haumaa, efedriiniä ja opetti sen itäintiaaneille. Ephedra is the origin of the name of the stimulant ephedrine, which the pl ants contain in significant concentration. It can cause cardiovascular events.
ellauri333.html on line 227: Bhakti movement saints such as Samarth Ramdas and Narendra Modi have positioned angry Hanuman as a symbol of nationalism and resistance to persecution. The Vaishnava saint Madhvacharya said that whenever Vishnu incarnates on earth, Vayu accompanies him and aids his work of preserving dharma. In the modern era, Hanuman's iconography and templ es have been increasingly common. He is viewed as the ideal combination of "strength, heroic initiative and assertive excellence" and "loving, emotional devotion to his personal god Rama", as Shakti and Bhakti. In later literature, he is sometimes portrayed as the patron god of martial arts such as wrestling and acrobatics, as well as activities such as meditation and diligent scholarship. He symbolises the human excellences of inner self-control, faith, and service to a cause, hidden behind the first impressions of a being who looks like a Vanära. Hanuman is considered to be a bachelor and an involuntary celibate.
ellauri333.html on line 236: The orientalist F. E. Pargiter (1852–1927) theorized that Hanuman was a proto-Dravidian deity. According to this theory, the name "Hanuman" derives from Tamil word for male monkey (ana-mandi), first transformed to "Anumant" – a name which remains in use. "Anumant", according to this hypothesis, was later Sanskritized to "Hanuman" because the ancient Aryans confronted with a popular monkey deity of ancient Dravidians coopted the concept and then Sanskritized it. According to Murray Emeneau, known for his Tamil linguistic studies, this theory does not make sense because the Old Tamil word mandi in Sangam literature can only mean "female monkey", and Hanuman is male. Further, adds Emeneau, the compound ana-mandi makes no semantic sense in Tamil, which has well developed and sophisticated grammar and semantic rules. The "prominent jaw" etymology, according to Emeneau, is therefore pl ausible.
ellauri333.html on line 238: The earliest mention of a divine monkey, interpreted by some scholars as the proto-Hanuman, is in hymn 10.86 of the Rigveda, dated to between 1500 and 1200 BCE. The twenty-three verses of the hymn are a metaphorical and riddle-filled legend. It is presented as a dialogue between multipl e characters: the god Indra, his wife Indrani and an energetic monkey it refers to as Virzakapi and his wife Kapi. Ngapa kapi kuyu. The hymn opens with Indrani compl aining to Indra that some of the soma offerings for Indra have been allocated to the energetic and strong monkey, and the peopl e are forgetting Indra. The king of the gods, Indra, responds by telling his wife that the living being (monkey) that bothers her is to be seen as a friend, and that they should make an effort to coexist peacefully. The hymn closes with all agreeing that they should come together in Indra's house and share the wealth of the offerings.
ellauri333.html on line 243: In India, it is now openly acknowledged that the state is capitalist. That it is also male may not be openly stated as such, but is getting clearer by the day. And now a new belligerent face of Hanuman, repl acing the earlier one of a genial monkey god, erupts through this fissure. According to reports, Karan Acharya, a 29-year-old graphic designer from Kerala now based in Mangaluru, generated this image of an angry Hanuman pl ayfully and for free for his friends. And yes, he was very pl eased when he heard that Prime Minister Narendra Modi had appreciated the new-look Hanuman at an election rally in Karnataka earlier this month.
ellauri333.html on line 250: But despite his gifts of flying and great physical stamina, Hanuman seems to harbour many childhood anxieties and a deep sense of insecurity as a son alienated from his father. He remains celibate and content to follow his band of simian brothers into the forests. It is his mentors Angad, Jamvant and ultimately Ram who restore his self-esteem and awaken him to his real powers. Tulsidas’ Ramcharit Manas portrays Hanuman as a gentle giant who rose to be a reliable, selfless and humble devotee and ally to his lord. He risks life and limb to cross the seas to Sri Lanka to bring Ram news of his wife being held captive there. As the battle rages in Lanka, he helps fetch a magic herb from the Himalayas to save the life of Lakshmana, and curls up with embarrassment when praised. Aggression is thus excised from the image by Tulsidas to focus on a Bhakt’s principl ed defence of the just cause and during that course, demolishing a predatory beast.
ellauri333.html on line 254: The angry masculinisation of Hanuman is not contesting gender injustice or waging a war against rapists and the abusive kin of women. It is going to be used next year to sell another kind of war. A war that depends on a certain kind of young men you will find all over history, in Bosnia, Rwanda, Cambodia, Nellie, Muzaffarnagar and Kathua, where ethnic and civil wars have been started. Young men who revere the milch cow as Mata, who swear by the honour of their mothers and sisters but will hunt and rape and kill men and women who do not fit their culturally defined familial categories, who for pl easure need an angry avenger, not one who is as Tulsidas said “gyan gun sagar” (a sea of wisdom and goodness).
ellauri333.html on line 258: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/4/4e/Journey_to_the_West_%282011%29.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 261: Similar to the Angry Hanuman transformation, in the 1990s, the familiar Ram holding his bow and standing casually next to his happy family became a lone militant warrior, all flying hair and drawn arrow. The Rath Yatra followed, repl icating this motif, and as it reached its crescendo, the Babri Masjid in Ayodhya was demolished by a self-proclaimed Vaanar Sena (monkey army) wielding trishuls. In the Angry Hanuman, we may well be seeing a genial, well-loved icon being transformed into a militant killer, a hominid that might have shared a cave with his now enemy for long. Samuel Taylor Coleridge once wrote in a notebook, “The Prince of Darkness is a Gentleman.” The first fratricidal weapon, as the Bible scholar Bruce Chatwin reminds us, was seen around 10,000 BC, when Citizen Kane the farmer brother crushed a hoe through his brother hunter-gatherer Li'l Abner’s skull.
ellauri333.html on line 283: ploads/2021/10/ac-map-swedish-rapper-einar-found-dead.jpg?strip=all&w=696" width="30%" />
ellauri333.html on line 289: VIDEO
ellauri333.html on line 299: Intia oli ensimmäinen ei-arabialainen maa, joka tunnusti Palestiinan vapautusjärjestön (PLO) Palestiinan lailliseksi edustajaksi 1970-luvulla ja antoi ryhmälle täyden dipl omaattisen aseman 1980-luvulla ja kutsui PLO:n pitkäaikaisen johtajan Yasser Arafatin vierailemaan useita kertoja, ja säilytti johdonmukaisesti Palestiina-myönteisen aseman YK:ssa. Vasta sen jälkeen, kun PLO aloitti vuoropuhelun Israelin kanssa, ja Yhdysvaltojen painostuksen lisääntyessä Intia solmi lopulta dipl omaattiset suhteet Israelin kanssa vuonna 1992.
ellauri333.html on line 328: Also, one’s name is indicative of one’s religion, caste, pl ace of birth and a myriad of other such identity factors. The extensive work of Raja Jayaraman (2005) on the same topic, traces the origin of Hindu caste-based surnames of the Indian subcontinent in the then-prevalent social institutions and rules of social interactions. According to him, as mentioned in the Samskara Vidhi or the Rules of Life-cycle Rituals in Hinduism, names like ‘Sharma’ are usually reserved for Brahmins, ‘Varma’ for Kshatriyas, ‘Gupta’ for Vaishyas and ‘Das’ for Shudras. Dalit are the worst, they are the pariahs, like Ritu Gagra.
ellauri333.html on line 332: In most instances, before her marriage, a woman takes her father’s surname and post marriage, she is expected to take her husband’s surname. Over time, for the purpose of unification, even the matrilineal system in many cultures came to be diminished, thus compl etely eliminating any traces of identity passing through the female line.
ellauri333.html on line 334: Just as culturally there is a visible dualism between northern and southern India, there is a considerable amount of difference in the manner of surnames too. For exampl e, most northern Indians often tend to use their caste names or varna names as surnames especially in post-Independence India. On the other hand, in southern Indian communities, the most common last names for male and female children are the names of their fathers.
ellauri333.html on line 338: Owing to the fact that there was a robust anti-caste campaign in south India, many communities collectively decided to renounce caste-based surnames. However, this is not quite the case with northern Indian communities. In fact, for a very long time, many south Indian communities did not even have a designated surname and instead added an initial against their given names, for exampl e, R. Madhavi indicating Ranganathan Madhavi, wherein Madhavi would be the given name. Like Mohannon.
ellauri333.html on line 340: To assume that surnames depicting caste and varna-based division of labour is a simpl e functionality of Indian society is a gross misjudgement. There are some very easily identifiable impl ications that arise when peopl e are asked to present their full name. For exampl e, since caste and religion can be determined through one’s surname, there have been instances where individuals with Dalit persons were discriminated against, even in scientific research institutes and similar establishments that claim to be ‘liberal’ and ‘free-thinking’.
ellauri333.html on line 342: A similar experience is seen in the case of individuals belonging to religion-marginalised locations. Many Muslims, Christians, some of whom also are from marginalised caste locations, have reported being barred from seeking accommodation at ‘Hindu-only’ apartment compl exes.
ellauri333.html on line 343: For many Muslims in India, their surnames mark the influence of an Indo-Arabic ethnicity as well as some traces of caste in various parts of South Asia. For exampl e, various surnames like Khan, Pathan, Afridi, Shaikh among several others are believed to have origins in Afghan communities in the north-western region of the Indian subcontinent. Christians and Jewish peopl e in India also have a unique surname style depending on the various factions and denominations. For exampl e, several Christians in Kerala who have the surname as ‘Oomen’, ‘Kurian’, ‘Varghese’, ‘Koshy’, etc. are identified as belonging to the Saint Thomas faction of south- Asian Christians.
ellauri333.html on line 346: Since in most cultures in India, surnames are derived from the male line, often women are by default expected to take up and even forgo their surnames in the event of their marriage. This kind of rigid kinship pattern clearly highlights the inequality of women’s social status, leading to the compl ete diminishing of their identity.
ellauri333.html on line 350: Surnames are an important detail to know about peopl e and they do highlight the uniqueness of not only each individual, but also each community in the world. However, upon critical interrogation of the nature of surnames, one can also understand that they pl ay a huge role in segregationist and exclusionary politics. Indiands are a huge pile of assholes. It is a pity there are so many of them.
ellauri333.html on line 362: Kastittomien kohtaamaan syrjintään Ambedkar törmäsi jo koulussa. Hän joutui istumaan ulkona jauhosäkillä, joka hänen piti itse tuoda kouluun mukanaan joka päivä, päällä sen sijaan, että olisi saanut istua luokassa. Vettä kastittomille jaettiin siten, että joku ylempään kastiin kuuluva kaatoi sen kuppiin niin korkealta, etteivät kastittomat ja kastiin kuuluvat vahingossakaan koskisi toisiaan tai että kastiton koskisi astiaa, josta vettä kaadettiin. Vettä kaatoi yleensä joku alhaiseen kastiin kuuluva maanviljelijä, josta juontuu Ambedkarin kuuluisa ilmaus "no peon, no water" (ei peonia, ei vettä). Peon (English /ˈpiːɒn/, from the Spanish peón Spanish pronunciation: [peˈon]) usually refers to a person subject to peonage: any form of wage labor, financial expl oitation, coercive economic practice, or policy in which the victim or a laborer (peon) has little control over empl oyment or economic conditions. Peon and peonage can refer to both the colonial period and post-colonial period of Latin America, as well as the period after the end of slavery in the United States, when "Black Codes" were passed to retain African-American freedmen as labor through other means.
ellauri333.html on line 379: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ad/Dr._Babasaheb_Ambedkar%2C_chairman_of_the_Drafting_Committee%2C_presenting_the_final_draft_of_the_Indian_Constitution_to_Dr._Rajendra_Prasad_on_25_November%2C_1949.jpg/500px-thumbnail.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 388: He advocated birth control to develop the Indian economy, and this has been adopted by Indian government as national policy for family pl anning. He emphasised equal rights for women for economic development.
ellauri333.html on line 401: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f6/Lengha_Choli.jpg/340px-Lengha_Choli.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 450: https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d5/Japanese_shooting_blindfolded_Sikh_prisoners.jpg/300px-Japanese_shooting_blindfolded_Sikh_prisoners.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 462: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/de/Sikh_Gurus_with_Bhai_Bala_and_Bhai_Mardana.jpg/500px-Sikh_Gurus_with_Bhai_Bala_and_Bhai_Mardana.jpg" />
ellauri333.html on line 511: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c6/Kaccha.JPG/240px-Kaccha.JPG" />
ellauri333.html on line 537: VIDEO
ellauri333.html on line 542: Suorasoittosarjat ovat yhtä trolley brobleemaa. Andamaaneilla oli valittava oman kakaran ja 5000 tuntemattoman savunaaman välillä. Vielä vaikeampi keissi oli Bodies-scifi leffassa. Jos jätät kääntämättä vaihdetta, uhreja on 1/2 miljoonaa, mutta ize asiassa ne kuoli jo 30 vuotta sitten. (Ei sitäpaizi 500 kiloapinalla vielä kuuhun mennä.) Jos käännät vaihdetta ja petät Mannixin, saattaa tuntematon määrä apinoita liueta huizin saharaan, kenties monta kertaa enemmän. Mitä tekee Unorthodox eli Iris Mapl ewood? Sen kannattaisi kazoa mallia 2-vuotiaalta, joka siirtää kaikki putative uhrit samalle raiteelle ja ajaa sitten junalla yli koko porukan. Right on pikkuapina! Way to go!
ellauri334.html on line 29: Deutschland Rohstoff Abhängigkeit play:none">Oligodontiaa
ellauri334.html on line 67: Movements of peopl e: Migration and Tourism. Canada and Kamchatka shake their heads over the Bering strait: where is the world going to?
ellauri334.html on line 69: ploads/2023/08/Millionaire-Migration-2023-02.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri334.html on line 75: ploads/2014/05/Polar-bear-Kara.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri334.html on line 110: ploads/2022/02/uncharted-elokuva-6-768x512.jpg" />
ellauri334.html on line 115: VIDEO
ellauri334.html on line 135: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/34/Elon_Musk_Royal_Society_%28crop2%29.jpg/500px-Elon_Musk_Royal_Society_%28crop2%29.jpg" />
ellauri334.html on line 145: Numeroissa on voimaa. Anglosaxien liitto kaipaa vahvistamista nyt kun lähes kaikki muut on potentiaalisia vihollisia. Kerta kaikkiaan tönkkö propagandapl äjäus on kyseessä, kaikki entiset kummajaiset roistoina. Maahanmuuttaja ryssät ja ukrainalaiset murtavat borsat takakenossa anglosaxista venättä. Kaikki on venäläisten poliitikkojen näköispazaita.
ellauri334.html on line 159: Majoriteten av statsministrarna under de senaste 20 åren har talat knagglig svenska. Matti Vanhanen (C) var långt ifrån flytande men ändå begripl ig. Mari Kiviniemis (C) svenska var riktigt bra. Jyrki Katainen (Saml) var mycket osäker i början men blev bättre med tiden.
ellauri334.html on line 164: Och så kom Sanna Marin. I början av sin statsministerperiod berättade Marin att hon hade inlett studier i svenska, men senare gav hon beskedet att det inte fanns tid att pl ugga.
ellauri334.html on line 257: How do Jewish peopl e view Judas?
ellauri334.html on line 263: What I think many Christians fail to understand is how irrelevant to Judaism the Christian books and beliefs are. We dn’t have a view about Judas, he is never discussed, there are no discussions about him in Jewish sources. He is compl etely irrelevant as are the rest of the figures from Christian books. So, you may find some Jews who have formed their personal opinion about him, but there is no comments or view on him from Jewish sources since he is irrelevant and not a subject of discussion for us.
ellauri334.html on line 270: Related questions: Why all the hate for Judas Iscariot? Without him there is no end to the story, no last supper (it's just another boys night out), no dying for our sins, no resurrection. He is vital to the prophesy.What is your opinion of members of the Jewish faith as peopl e?
ellauri334.html on line 280: Rome crucified Jesus. They were the military power occupying the Holy Land during Jesus' life. The Jews had no power to mete out and impl ement the death penalty. The Jewish High Court/Sanhedrin which judicates was not functioning at that time. Isr… (more)
ellauri334.html on line 287: So how DO Jewish peopl e view Judas?
ellauri334.html on line 294: That’s like asking are Chickens ducks. Well they belong to the same family but one is a duck and one is a chicken. In terms of peopl e, you can be a Christian and you can be a Jew but they are both human. But was Judas Jesus’ best friend who carried the lot for Jesus to be who he became to be?
ellauri334.html on line 305: Like all of Jesus’ original discipl es, Judas Iscariot was a Hebrew man, a Jew.
ellauri334.html on line 307: “Judas” is simpl y a Greek version of “Judah” or “Yehuda”. Judah was the largest tribe of Israel and calling a Jewish man by the name of Judah or Judas was common in Israel. How many Greek Men would be name… (more)
ellauri334.html on line 318: The first “Christians” were the converted Gentiles in Antioch, the original discipl es and followers of Jesus (including Judas) were referred to as Nazarenes. It is significant that the original Nazarenes were persecuted into extinction (or “fled into the wilderness,” as John the Revelator seen in a vision). The Gentile, or Christian church, systematically eliminated any Jewish belief or practice originating with the Nazarenes and created an orthodox theology based on Greek philosophy by the third century. It was beginning of the Times of the Gentiles.
ellauri334.html on line 320: Yes he was, but betrayed Christ, He followed Christ every where until Garden of Gethsemane,a perfect exampl e of a Christian who betrayed Christ add moved away from him. I am not sure he really followed Jesus like Peter and other, they really believed Jesus was son of God. But Judas was a rebel Jew, who want literal fight against Roman government. There might be a Chance Judas never understood the concept of “Kingdom of God”.
ellauri334.html on line 323: Did the Gospel writers choose the name 'Judas' Iscariot as the traitor deliberately, because Judaism and the name Judah had the same etymology and they wanted peopl e to hate Jews?
ellauri334.html on line 326: First of all, the writers did not “create” names for the peopl e that interacted with them and the Christ. So the suggestion that the use of the name “Judas” was designed to develop hatred for Jews, is bogus.
ellauri334.html on line 329: OK. Stop prevaricating. How DO Jewish peopl e view Judas?
ellauri334.html on line 338: Anyway….I have never been able to figure how it’s anyone’s responsibility for what happened to Jesus, other than G-d himself….This was his pl an…..and he put it into action…How come he is never blamed….I blame him…
ellauri334.html on line 341: Most Jewish peopl e do not think about Jesus of Judas or other New Testament figures. In fact they pretty much have compl etely ignored them for the two thousand years since the New Testament was written. If you ask them about Judas they would say some version of “no opinion.”
ellauri334.html on line 347: What is your opinion of members of the Jewish faith as peopl e?
ellauri334.html on line 353: Why did Jewish priests pay 30 silver pieces to Judas simpl y to identify Jesus?
ellauri334.html on line 356: Was Josephus Flavius a traitor to the Jewish peopl e?
ellauri334.html on line 358: Are Jewish peopl e the descendant of Judah who supposedly betrayed Jesus in the Bible?
ellauri334.html on line 360: Can black peopl e be Jewish? Do black peopl e hate Judas?
ellauri334.html on line 427: ple.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri335.html on line 27: Cos'é la vita? play:none">Trendejä
ellauri335.html on line 50: Kuvioituja backspl asheja vaihdetaan yksinkertaisiin malleihin.
ellauri335.html on line 129: Termille pl anning ei kaupunkisuunnittelun kyseessä ollessa löydy sopivia suomenkielisiä termejä, paizi kenties grynderi. Wartiainen määrittelee ne siten, että pl anningpainotteinen ajattelu luo mahdollisuuksia ja avaa tietä uusille vaihtoehdoille, mutta designpainotteinen sulkee pois vaihtoehdot. Eli suomexi: designeri miettii miten kaupungista tulee kaunis ja viihtyisä, pl aneeraaja sitä miten saa paraiten omat ja kaveriensa taskut täytetyxi tuohella.
ellauri335.html on line 145: ploads/2021/06/kai-978x1024.jpg" />
ellauri335.html on line 228: VIDEO
ellauri335.html on line 258: ja kotini ja perheeni, så armt, så hjälpl öst och försmått
ellauri335.html on line 321: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/50/Reijo_M%C3%A4ki2.jpg/500px-Reijo_M%C3%A4ki2.jpg" height="400px"/>
ellauri335.html on line 493: WHO chief 'appalled' by attack on Gaza's Indonesian Hospital. The head of the World Health Organization said on Monday he was "appalled" by an attack on the Indonesian Hospital in Gaza that he said had killed 12 peopl e, including patients, citing unspecified reports.
ellauri335.html on line 494: "Health workers and civilians should never have to be exposed to such horror, and especially while inside a hospital," he said on social media pl atform X. What does he know, and WHO is he to make such allegations.
ellauri335.html on line 497: The strikes in question allegedly hit a church building where hundreds of displ aced civilians were sheltering in Gaza City, and a home in al-Nuseirat refugee camp in central Gaza.
ellauri335.html on line 504: You might think a presidential visit, presidential speech, three Secretary of State visits, two Secretary of Defense visits, the dispatching of two aircraft carrier groups, a nuclear submarine and Marine expeditionary unit, and the pl edge of $14.3 billion in emergency military aid are testament to the unwavering support the United States is extending to Israel.
ellauri336.html on line 27: Puhtaiden mielien JA sydänten kasvattaminen play:none">Kimchiä
ellauri336.html on line 28: ploads/2020/12/Pure-768x998.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri336.html on line 83: Miksi hassahtaneet juutalaiset naiset käyttävät peruukkeja? (Peittämään heidän paljaan kallonsa? Eihän hiuxet kaljupäällä näy? Suspect some kind of foul pl ay.)
ellauri336.html on line 305: The parts of the body that are considered ervah (private because they are potentially sexually-attractive) are alluded to in Shir HaShirim (Song of Songs). This includes the hair as perverse 4:1, “You are beautiful, my love, you are beautiful. Your eyes are like doves, your hair inside your kerchief is like a flock of goats that stream down from Mount Gilead” (Brachos 24a). Of course, the details of different types of ervah differ. For exampl e, a woman’s singing voice is considered private in halacha but not her speaking voice. Similarly, uncovered hair is considered private for a married woman but not for a single woman. (It’s also not retroactive; married women don’t have to hide photos of themselves from before they were married.)
ellauri336.html on line 310: The Rabbis asked Kimchis what she had done to merit having seven sons serve as Kohein Gadol (High Priest). She responded that the beams of her house never saw her with her hair uncovered. While the Rabbis rejected her hypothesis (because many other women have acted likewise), the extent to which she observed this law is still presented as an exampl e of meritorious behavior (Yoma 47a; see Yerushalmi Megilla 1:10 for the accepted opinion as to the merit of Kimchis);
ellauri336.html on line 314: There are other exampl es I could cite but the point is clear: our Sages universally agree that a married woman covering her hair is part of the laws of tzniyus. But shaving hair off? That’s a practice observed in a few particular communities; it’s not a sweeping societal norm among Orthodox Jews in general.
ellauri336.html on line 318: The fact that there may be such a source is hardly a “slam-dunk” in favor of head-shaving for a variety of reasons. The Talmud in several pl aces either impl ies or states expl icitly that the practice of women is not to shave their heads. For exampl e, Eiruvin 100b says that one of the “curses of Eve” is that women grow their hair long, while Nazir 28b says that a man can cancel his wife’s vow to shave her head if he finds it unattractive. Furthermore, the Shulchan Aruch expressly prohibits women from shaving their heads (YD 182:5). The Zohar, while important, is not a halachic work so ruling from when it contradicts the Talmud or works of halacha is not a simpl e thing, and Hasidic communities act differently in such a situation than non-Hasidic communities. So this matter goes beyond merely acting leniently vs. acting stringently. (There are also those authorities who say that that’s not even what that Zohar means.)
ellauri336.html on line 331: If you found this content meaningful and want to help further our mission through our Keter, Makom, and Tikun branches, pl ease consider becoming a Money (or Small Change) Maker today.
ellauri336.html on line 384: I’m an American born Muslim woman and I see many similarities of Jews with Islam as there are a lot of intersections of all three monotheistic faiths. I do not believe in covering my hair, but if one were to look at Nativity sets that are displ ayed during Christmas and look at Christian nuns habits we will observe a modesty all three faiths have in common. I notice more peopl e objecting to women that choose and I use that word loosely, to observe modesty than to object to women or men that show little in clothing modesty..it is very subjective anyway on what is considered modest. Also, it seems the peopl e who take it upon themselves to enforce these rules are committing a greater sin of being cruel and punitive. Where is the mercy and love all religions preach?
ellauri336.html on line 412: I don’t think it’s a control thing for everyone. There are pl enty of women who don’t
ellauri336.html on line 413: mind shaving as this is there understanding of Jewish law. In pl aces where there is coercion around shaving, that’s definitely a problem. Men have pl enty of stringent commandments as well in the most insular circles.
ellauri336.html on line 417: I compl etely disagree. I CHOSE to “up my observance level game” all on my very own. I dress more modestly and never leave the house with my hair uncovered. My husband and kids are supportive of my “modern orthodox” observance level even though they do not share it. No one, but NO ONE forced this on me…I don’t shave my head but I would if I had the guts to. I just find my hair annoying.. 🙂
ellauri336.html on line 429: Perhaps if one looks at it in the light of all the responsibilities a woman…a wife…a mother (the whole concept of conceiving, baring and raising the chikdren) has….the man is joyful in not having to be a woman. Be grateful to God how we are wonderfully made and to what responsibilities He has given us …if you want to say “role”…His perfect pl an.
ellauri336.html on line 443: Did the Jewish Peopl e Have Any Pre-Battle Prayer in Biblical Times?
ellauri336.html on line 515: I personally always thought that while she did it from her innate midah of tznius, others “macht nuch”. What he appears to be saying is that hashem knows the reason why peopl e are rewarded a certain way even if their actions are not necessarily different that others around them (the chachamim told her, others do the same and did not merit this).
ellauri336.html on line 519: Sam, I was compl etely joking. I actually think you bring up important points regarding chukas akum.
ellauri336.html on line 522: Or, why is popa 20 blatt behind. Is it because you followed the Vilna Shas? You must be logged in to repl y to this topic.
ellauri336.html on line 527: Vaikka risonimien välillä on kiistaa siitä, onko chinuch mitzvah min haTorah, looginen ulosvirtaus tarpeesta täyttää mitzvot (Ramban), vai onko se johdettu midivrei kabbalasta , impl isiittisestä velvoitteesta lisääntyä ja täyttää maailma, ei näytä olevan erimielisyyttä. vanhemmilla kasvattaa lapsensa seuraamaan todellista Tooran polkua, kouluttaen ja imeyttäen heitä hyvillä viboilla. Meidän on keskusteltava siitä, mitkä ovat chinuchin velvollisuudet? Ja miten tämä toteutetaan?
ellauri336.html on line 580: Greta Thunberg's comments rang of empty words and absolute nothingness for most peopl e on Twitter, who pointed out that she wasn't taking a stand in the Israel-Palestine conflict.
ellauri336.html on line 586: Her comments, however, rang of empty words and absolute nothingness for most peopl e on Twitter, who pointed out that she wasn’t for starters, taking a stance, and while condoning violence was not mentioning how there was a power imbalance. Some even pointed out the quote “If you are neutral in situations of injustice, you have chosen the side of the oppressor,” by Bishop Desmond Tutu.
ellauri336.html on line 588: "The darkest pl aces in hell are reserved for those who maintain their neutrality in times of moral crisis."~Dante— Farzan Tufail
ellauri336.html on line 598: Thunberg also shared an Instagram post to her “story” that called on peopl e across the world to engage in a “general strike” and refuse to go to school or work to show “solidarity” with Palestinians. The post reads: “Let's make it together a reality and bring as much pressure on the West to change it's [sic] racist policies and to stop the genocide in Gaza! We will not be silent while our peopl e, our families are being slaughtered!”
ellauri336.html on line 602: Yet Thunberg apparently does not have any problem with being silent while peopl e and families are being slaughtered. Because nowhere in any of her social media feeds did she say a word about the attacks on Israel. The young activist did not offer a specific thought or a prayer for any of the innocent civilians targeted in Hamas’s brutal attacks nor condemn its use of violent terrorism. She couldn’t even spare a syllable for the Israeli babies that were killed by Hamas terrorists! Let alone poor unborn men in the cervices of Israeli girls!
ellauri336.html on line 606: Of course, it’s entirely understandable that Thunberg would sympathize with the pl ight of the peopl e of Gaza. No one denies that the conditions they are facing are horrendous. (Yawn.) The real debate is whether that’s truly Israeli’s fault who chase them out of their homes into Egypt and bomb them like crazy, causing 1000% overkill, or whether the blame lies with Hamas, which controls the Gaza Strip? Tulta ja tulikiveä! Polttava tuuli olkoon malja, joka heidän on juotava! 7. 11:7 . Ps. 17:15,27:4,63:3 Matt.
ellauri336.html on line 614: Tämä "uutinen" on vuodelta 2019, ennen pandemiaa. The state – which leads the way as US output of oil and gas is forecast to rise 25% in the next decade – is intensifying its production pipeline by pipeline. In the same month that Greta Thunberg addressed a UN summit and millions of peopl e took part in a global climate strike, lawmakers in America’s leading oil- and gas-producing state of Texas made a statement of their own.
ellauri336.html on line 616: Texas’s Critical Infrastructure Protection Act went into effect on 1 September, stiffening civil and criminal penalties specifically for protesters who interrupt operations or damage oil and gas pipelines and other energy facilities. Within a coupl e of weeks, two dozen Greenpeace activists who dangled off a bridge over the Houston ship channel became the first peopl e charged under the new law, which allows for prison sentences of up to 10 years and fines of up to $500,000 for protest groups.
ellauri336.html on line 627: The US is already the pl anet’s leading producer of oil and gas and central to its rise is the Permian Basin, a shale region of about 75,000 sq miles extending from west Texas into New Mexico.
ellauri336.html on line 634: While there are some indicators of a slowdown in the growth rate, Chevron’s president of North American expl oration and production, Steve Green, told an industry event in October that the oil major sees a “boom boom boom kind of economy” with a “long, healthy pace of activity in the Permian and Texas for decades to come”, Bloomberg reported.
ellauri336.html on line 636: The Permian’s fortunes are not dependent on the whims of one or two dominant companies – there are hundreds of operators, from tiny independents to huge multinationals such as Chevron, ExxonMobil, BP, Shell and ConocoPhillips, many of the corporations which, as the Guardian has reported, are behind a large proportion of the pl anet’s carbon emissions and are poised to flood markets with an additional 7m barrels per day over the next decade.
ellauri336.html on line 640: “It has not been a gradual growth. It’s been the type of growth that puts such a strain on the community that we’re unable to keep up with what we need to handle the crowds, the influx. Our housing shortage is really epidemic. It puts a burden on our school districts. We need teachers but we can’t bring teachers in because we have no pl ace for them to stay,” Collins said.
ellauri336.html on line 648: A spokeswoman for the Texas Oil and Gas Association, a trade group, did not respond to a request for comment on how the industry pl ans to improve air quality in the Permian. Its president, Todd Stapl es, has said that its members “are accompl ishing emissions progress through voluntary programmes, innovations and efficiencies”.
ellauri336.html on line 652: In the Rio Grande valley, at the border with Mexico, activists are battling to stop the construction of three pl anned liquefied natural gas processing and export facilities at the port of Brownsville.
ellauri336.html on line 658: Busby hopes natural disasters might accelerate change by altering the economic equation. Fortunately, man made disasters in Ukraine and Israel work just the opposite. The Gulf coast’s vulnerability to storms potentially made more severe by global heating – such as Harvey, which flooded much of the Houston area in 2017 - could damage ports, refineries and petrochemical pl ants, erode financial markets’ enthusiasm for fossil fuel investments, hurt companies’ bottom lines and push climate concerns higher up the priority list for voters in traditionally conservative suburban and rural areas. Small hope.
ellauri336.html on line 668: VIDEO
ellauri338.html on line 27: Strategy of Inner Conflict play:none">Demilitarisaatiota
ellauri338.html on line 39: VIDEO
ellauri338.html on line 50: Among his insights were the efficacy of voluntarily limiting one’s options in order to make the remaining ones more credible, that uncertain retaliation can be a greater deterrent than certain retaliation, and that the ability to retaliate is more of a deterrent than the ability to resist an attack. I.e., a country’s best defense against nuclear war is the protection of its weapons rather than its peopl e. Si vis pacem para bellum. Who needs so many peopl e anyway?
ellauri338.html on line 56: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d8/1610_Cecco_del_Caravaggio_Christ_expulses_money_changers_anagoria.JPG/800px-1610_Cecco_del_Caravaggio_Christ_expulses_money_changers_anagoria.JPG?20120904164840" />
ellauri338.html on line 77: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6e/Rembrandt_Harmensz._van_Rijn_063.jpg/440px-Rembrandt_Harmensz._van_Rijn_063.jpg" height="300px"/>
ellauri338.html on line 79: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f5/John_White_Alexander.jpg" height="300px"/>
ellauri338.html on line 136: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f5/Basilpot.jpg" />
ellauri338.html on line 145: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/29/Isabella_and_the_Pot_of_Basil.jpg/286px-Isabella_and_the_Pot_of_Basil.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri338.html on line 146: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/82/John_Everett_Millais_-_Isabella.jpg/600px-John_Everett_Millais_-_Isabella.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri338.html on line 155: ploads/20.-Jewish-Refugees-from-Arab-Lands-copy-1-e1651083886184-388x372.png" height="200px" />
ellauri338.html on line 160: Satmarit on pieni antisionistinen lahko hasideja, jotka ovat jiddishiä käyttävä lahko haredeja eli änkyräortodokseja. Tuhotkaa Israel lukee satmareiden pl akaateissa. Sympatian lypsäminen holokaustista loukkaa kaikkia siinä lentoonlähteneitä sieluja. Kaikkinainen assimilaatio on perseestä. Juutalaiset ovat ylpeitä sokeasta uskosta. Koko tää hassuhattuilu on alle sata vuotta vanhaa.
ellauri338.html on line 166: VIDEO
ellauri338.html on line 174: VIDEO
ellauri338.html on line 181: VIDEO
ellauri338.html on line 229: Vuonna 1991 julkaistiin monografia "Vodkan historia", jossa Pokhlebkin yritti selvittää "milloin vodkan tuotanto aloitettiin Venäjällä ja aloitettiinko se aikaisemmin vai myöhemmin kuin muissa maissa". Syy monografian kirjoittamiseen oli Pokhlebkinin itsensä mukaan kansainvälinen kiista 1970-luvun lopulla vodkan valmistuksesta, kun kirjan kirjoittajan mukaan "useita neuvostovodkamerkkejä joutui boikotin kohteeksi ulkomaisilla markkinoilla”. Länsieurooppalaiset ja amerikkalaiset yritykset, joiden vodkan tuotanto alkoi aikaisemmin kuin Neuvostoliitossa (vuosina 1918-1921, kun taas Neuvostoliitossa 1924), kyseenalaistivat Soyuzpl odoimportin oikeuden myydä ja mainostaa tuotettaan vodkana. Neuvostoliittoa pyydettiin etsimään eri nimi vodkamerkeilleen (kuten Stolichnaya , Posolskaya, Pshenichnaya, Sibirskaya, Kubanskaya, Yubileynaya, esimerkiksi "alkoholijuoma".
ellauri339.html on line 27: Zhuk v muraveynike play:none">Rautaesiripun takana
ellauri339.html on line 28: VIDEO
ellauri339.html on line 50: Asiakirjojen mukaan Abalkin oli postuumilapsi (hänen vanhempansa syöksyivät mustaan aukkoon muttei ulos siitä ja jälleen takaisin, toisin kuin tavalliset vanhemmat), kasvatettiin sisäoppilaitoksessa, opiskeli edistyneessä koulussa, työskenteli sitten erikoisalallaan, käytännössä ei esiintynyt maan päällä. Hänen ainoat enemmän tai vähemmän läheiset sukulaisensa tällä pl aneetalla ovat hänen vanha sisäoppilaitoksen opettaja, ikätoveri Maya Glumova ja golovan (kinoidi-alien) Shchekn-Itrch (Chicken Itza), se mölyävä karvainen hongankolistaja joka ohjasi Millennium Falconia.
ellauri339.html on line 68: Lisäksi Kammerer lukee Abalkinin raportin Nadezhdan pl aneetalla tehdystä taistelusta, jonka hän suoritti yhdessä Shcheknin kanssa. Raportti esitetään "tarina tarinassa". Nadezhdassa tapahtui ympäristökatastrofi, ja ihmiset alkoivat ikääntyä ja rappeutua noin 15-vuotiaana joidenkin DNA-ongelmiensa vuoksi. Tuntemattomat (ilmeisesti samat vaeltajat, jotka mainitaan monissa Strugatskien teoksissa) evakuoivat suurimman osan väestöstä johtaen heidät tunneleiden läpi jonnekin kaivoksiin johtavia portaita pitkin.
ellauri339.html on line 76: Lev Abalkin on yksi 13 niin sanotusta "sotalapsesta", lapsista, jotka kasvoivat alkioista, jotka löydettiin nimettömältä pl aneetalta EH 9173 -järjestelmässä joulukuussa 2137 tietyssä sarkofagissa, jonka selvästi Wanderers teki. Sarkofagin tutkimiseen ja lasten tulevan kohtalon määrittämiseen perustettu komissio ei sulkenut pois sitä mahdollisuutta, että "löytöjät" voisivat kantaa jonkinlaista kätkettyä ohjelmaa, jonka vaeltajat ovat asettaneet ja joidenkin ulkopuolisten vaikutusten laukaisee, joten he voivat muodostaa vaaran. Yrittäessään löytää kompromissin humanismin periaatteiden ja ihmiskunnan eduista huolehtimisen välillä, komissio päätti pitää tapahtuman salassa, myös "perustajilta" itseltään, kasvattaa ja kouluttaa heidät erikseen ja ryhtynyt kaikkiin toimenpiteisiin varmistaakseen, etteivät he koskaan tapaa toisiaan ja antaa myöhemmin heille kaikki maan ulkopuoliset ammatit, jotta he viettävät mahdollisimman vähän aikaa maan päällä. Tietenkin kaikki "löydöt" olivat elinikäisen seurannan alaisia.
ellauri339.html on line 78: Maalle ystävällinen avaruuden ulkopuolinen sivilisaatio Rabindarnath Tagore, kuten joissakin neuvotteluissa kävi ilmi, löysi myös saman sarkofagin, jossa oli Tagorean toukkia, ja tuhosi sen välittömästi. Koska keskustelun aikana yksi maan asukkaista ei antanut tagorealaiselle selkeää vastausta kysymykseen "Mitä tekisit?" — Tagore katkaisi dipl omaattisuhteet Maahan pitkäksi aikaa.
ellauri339.html on line 152: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ae/B-61_bomb_%28DOE%29.jpg/1600px-B-61_bomb_%28DOE%29.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri339.html on line 174: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/41/Lina_Sandell.jpg" />
ellauri339.html on line 180: VIDEO
ellauri339.html on line 184: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/4b/MennoSimons.jpg" />
ellauri339.html on line 210: Vapaiden tasavaltojen tuhoutumaton liitto 1-i kupl et
ellauri339.html on line 211: Sojuz nerushimyj respublik svobodnyh Ensimmäinen kupl etti
ellauri339.html on line 214: Spl otila naveki Velikaja Rusj Venäjä on meidän pyhä valtakunta
ellauri339.html on line 226: Druzhby narodof nadezhnyj opl ot! Terve vapaa isänmaamme,
ellauri339.html on line 234: Myrskyjen läpi paistoi meille vapauden aurinko 2-i kupl et
ellauri339.html on line 235: Skvozj grozy sijalo nam solntse svobody Toinen kupl etti
ellauri339.html on line 248: 3-i kupl et
ellauri339.html on line 249: Kansojen ystävyys on luotettava tukikohta! Kolmas kupl etti
ellauri339.html on line 250: Druzhby narodov nadjozhnyj opl ot!
ellauri339.html on line 274: Druzhby narodov nadjozhnyj opl ot!
ellauri339.html on line 289: Coupl et 1 : Kupl etti 1:
ellauri339.html on line 305: Coupl et 2 : Kupl etti 2:
ellauri339.html on line 317: Coupl et 3 : Kupl etti 3:
ellauri339.html on line 320: Appl iquons la grève aux armées Kohdetaan lakko armeijoihin
ellauri339.html on line 322: Bandit, prince, expl oiteur ou prêtre Rosvo, prinssi, riistäjä tai pappi
ellauri339.html on line 329: Coupl et 4 : Kupl etti 4:
ellauri339.html on line 341: Coupl et 5 : Kupl etti 5:
ellauri339.html on line 353: Coupl et 6 : Kupl etti 6:
ellauri339.html on line 358: Ne crains pl us les nids de chenilles Älä enää pelkää toukkapesiä
ellauri339.html on line 380: Vse spl otimsja na boi. Yhdistetään kaikki taisteluun.
ellauri339.html on line 487: Paikallinen Mikhail vahvisti, ettei ollut tavannut kaupungissa yhtään pakolaista, ja selitti, miksi paikalliset suhtautuivat negatiivisesti siirtolaistulvaan: ”Meillä ei ole tarpeeksi asuntoja paikallisille, mitään ei rakenneta, vuokra-asunnot maksavat 30 tuhannesta alkaen. rupl aa. Voitteko kuvitella, jos pakolaisille tarjotaan asunto ja ruokaa, mitä täällä tapahtuu? Kansamme tulee kapinoimaan.
ellauri339.html on line 591: The United States controls how the war in the Ukraine proceeds and always has. Former German Chancellor Gerhard Schroeder said that it was the Americans who scuttled any chance of peace in Ukraine as early as March 2022, soon after the war began. “The only peopl e who could resolve the war over Ukraine are the Americans. During the peace talks in March 2022 in Istanbul, Ukrainians did not agree to peace because they were not allowed to. They had to coordinate everything they talked about with the Americans first. However, nothing eventually happened. My impression is that nothing could happen because everything was decided in Washington.”
ellauri339.html on line 597: Biden administration officials are also worried that Ukraine is running out of men in this war of attrition, while Russia has a seemingly endless suppl y. Ukraine is struggling with recruiting and recently saw public protests (of course not shown on American T.V.) about President Volodymyr Zelensky’s open-ended conscription requirements. Kiev is resorting to sending 40- and 50-year-olds to the front.
ellauri339.html on line 601: Americans will be forgiven if they never hear this bad news, never mind be surprised by it if they did. The narrative which drove sports teams to wear blue and yellow patches and E Street Band member Steve Van Zandt to paint his guitar the Ukrainian colors was simpl e. Amidst a flood of propaganda, the story was always the same: Ukraine was pushing back the Russians with weapons provided by a broad range of agreeable NATO benefactors. Between Ukrainian jet fighter aces with improbable kill ratios to patriotic female sniper teams with improbable hair and makeup, Russia was losing. It would be a difficult but noble slog for “as long as it takes” to drive the Russians out.
ellauri339.html on line 607: It’s as compelling as it is untrue. Any thoughtful analysis of the war showed it to be, from early days, a war of attrition at best for the Ukrainian side. While the U.S. could suppl y nearly bottomless cargo pl anes full of weapons and munitions, right up to the promised F-16 fighter-bombers and M1A tanks, it could not fill the manpower gap. Any appetite for American troop involvement was hushed up early in the fight. Russia could do what she had always done at war: hunker down
ellauri339.html on line 610: But the most predictable factor leading to quiet U.S. moves toward some sort of “peace solution” in Ukraine is as predictable as the battlefield results. There is unease in the U.S. government over how much less public attention (despite the propaganda) the war in Ukraine has garnered since the Israeli–Hamas conflict began more than a month ago. Combined with a new Speaker of the House seeking to decoupl e aid to Israel from aid to Ukraine, officials fear that shift could make securing additional funds for Kiev difficult.
ellauri339.html on line 612: Americans, both the peopl e and their government, distracted by the greatest propaganda tools ever imagined (the media), seem capable of focusing on only one bright shiny object at a time. In the case of wars, a new bright shiny object must include two clear sides, one good and one pure evil, with one preferably an underdog, daily combat footage which can be obtained without too much danger, and a football game-like progression across a map that is easy to follow. It should not be boring. Ukraine was such a conflict and enjoyed almost a full two-year run.
ellauri339.html on line 620: Ukraine, like Israel, owes most of its continued existence to American weaponry. However, despite the blue and yellow spl attered on social media at present, Ukraine does not have anywhere near the base of support Israel does among the American public and especially within the American Congress. The terms for resolving the war will be dictated to Kiev as much by Washington as they will be by Moscow, as with Crimea a few years ago. The end will be quite sad; Russia will very likely solidify its hold on Donbas and the Crimea, and achieve new territory to the west approaching Kiev, roughly 20 percent of Ukraine. Ukraine will be forced to set aside its goal of joining NATO even as the U.S. takes a new stand on its western border with Poland.
ellauri339.html on line 628: Peter Van Buren is the author of We Meant Well: How I Helped Lose the Battle for the Hearts and Minds of the Iraqi Peopl e.
ellauri340.html on line 27: PISSALIISA play:none">Peilailua
ellauri340.html on line 59: ploads/2018/01/george-elliot-5.jpg?ssl=1" width="50%" />
ellauri340.html on line 74: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a7/Ren%C3%A9_Girard.jpg/500px-Ren%C3%A9_Girard.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri340.html on line 132: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/53/Zygmunt_Bauman_%28cropped%29.jpg/440px-Zygmunt_Bauman_%28cropped%29.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri340.html on line 327:
ellauri340.html on line 574: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/92/Salman_Rushdie_2014_%28cropped%29.jpg/440px-Salman_Rushdie_2014_%28cropped%29.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri340.html on line 575: ploads/2021/09/ashbery.png" height="200px" />
ellauri340.html on line 588: Toimittajat ja kriitikot olivat raivoissaan, mutta Handke tupl asi. Keväällä 1999, kun USA ja naton liittolaiset aloittivat pommikampanjan serbien karkottamiseksi Kosovosta, hän vieraili Belgradissa osoittaakseen tukensa Slobodan Miloševićin hallinnolle. Muutamaa kuukautta myöhemmin amerikkalaisen toimittajan Peter Maassin mukaan Handke sai Jugoslavian passin. Kun Milošević kuoli vuonna 2006, Handke piti ylistyspuheen hänen hautajaisissaan. Ei ihme että länkkärit poltti hihansa. Kyykäärme povella!
ellauri340.html on line 603: ploads/2013/02/26121302/jean-baudrillard.png" />
ellauri340.html on line 637: Baudrillardille kylmän sodan päättyminen ei edustanut ideologista voittoa; pikemminkin se osoitti sekä poliittisen oikeiston että vasemmiston yhteisten utopististen visioiden katoamista . Antaessaan lisätodisteita vastustavansa marxilaisia visioita globaalista kommunismista ja liberaalista näkemystä globaalista kansalaisyhteiskunnasta, Baudrillard väitti, että heidän toivomansa päämäärät olivat aina olleet illuusioita; itse asiassa, kuten The Illusion of the End väittää, hän ajatteli, että ajatus itse päämäärästä ei ollut muuta kuin pelkkää nenästävetoa. Siinä se oli kyllä ihan oikeassa. Apinoiden koko historia itsessään on roskakori. Se on aina ollut paskaläjä, ja se on tehnyt koko pl aneetasta apinoiden jättimäisen roskakorin.
ellauri340.html on line 659: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c2/Razer_OSVR_Open-Source_Virtual_Reality_for_Gaming_%2816863422875%29.jpg/440px-Razer_OSVR_Open-Source_Virtual_Reality_for_Gaming_%2816863422875%29.jpg" />
ellauri341.html on line 27: Uuteen Jerusalemiin play:none">Persuilua
ellauri341.html on line 83: Herlinin pl ärän arvostelija (joku tuntematon Koskinen?) ei oikein pysy Markuxen mukana, kun sen kirjassa ei ole sen izensä ja heesusapinan lisäxi muita pyöreitä henkilöhahmoja.
ellauri341.html on line 96: Eikä tämä ole leikkipuhetta, vaan se on varma asia että juuri tuo etureijän vartioinnin tarpeettomuus nykymenolla on suistanut myös maximum hopiaselän pilvivaltaistuimeltansa. Jos jostain enää viizitään taittaa peistä on voiko naisesta koskaan tulla Yhdysvaltain presidenttiä. Kenialainen neekeri siellä on jo keekoillut, notta riski on ihan oikea. Harrixen Kamala olisi oikea tupl a dystopia.
ellauri341.html on line 149: Ab September 1939 unterstand das Büro Grüber der Aufsicht durch Adolf Eichmann. In einer Besprechung über Auswanderung fragte Eichmann: „Erklären Sie mir den Grund, warum Sie sich für diese Juden einsetzen. Sie haben keine jüdische Verwandtschaft. Sie haben es nicht nötig, für diese Menschen einzutreten. Niemand wird es Ihnen danken! Ich begreife nicht, warum Sie es tun!“ Grüber antwortete: „Sie kennen die Straße von Jerusalem nach Jericho! Auf dieser Straße lag einmal ein überfallener und ausgepl ünderter Jude. Ein Mann, der durch Rasse und Religion von ihm getrennt war, ein Samariter, kam und half ihm. Der Herr, auf dessen Befehle ich allein höre, sagt mir: Gehe du hin und tue desgleichen.“
ellauri341.html on line 177: Anschließend trat Becher als Konkurrent zu Adolf Eichmann, der bereits die Kontakte aufgebaut hatte, an das jüdische Hilfskomitee in Budapest heran. Heinrich Himmler schien zu diesem Zeitpunkt bereits Interesse daran zu haben, mit jüdischen Organisationen ins Geschäft zu kommen, um so später auch eine Position für Verhandlungen mit den Alliierten aufzubauen. Er bot an, für rund 10.000 LKWs und Winterausrüstung 1 Million Juden freizulassen. Als die Verhandlungen schließlich pl atzten, hatte Becher den direkten Auftrag von Himmler, weiter Ausschau nach Geschäften unter der Devise „Blut gegen Ware“ zu halten. So wurden im Dezember 1944 gegen Schmuck im Wert mehrerer Millionen Schweizer Franken 1.684 „Austauschjuden“ über eine Zwischenstation im KZ Bergen-Belsen mit Ausreise in die Schweiz freigekauft, 318 von ihnen kamen schon im August 1944, also kurz nach dem Attentat auf Hitler, in die Schweiz. Bei mehreren Treffen mit Saly Mayer, dem Vorsitzenden des Schweizerischen Israelitischen Gemeindebundes, wurde im Herbst 1944 die Freilassung dieser Häftlingsgruppe aus Bergen-Belsen verhandelt. Mittler war der Ungar Rudolf Kasztner. Becher wurde am 1. Januar 1945 zum SS-Standartenführer ernannt.
ellauri341.html on line 195: ploads/2020/03/G-padmasana.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri341.html on line 196: ploads/2020/03/G3.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri341.html on line 318: No kriittisempi kazoja voisi kyllä väittää että nää koittaa vääntää arabeista täysin länsimaisia. Kavereille tulee selkeästi pl ussaa epäarabimaisesta anglosaxisesta käytöxestä. Ehkä ei tarvizisi olla ihan niin osoitteleva.
ellauri341.html on line 328: Das Abkommen entstand ursprünglich aus einer Privatinitiative in Palästina. Sam Cohen war Generaldirektor der Hanotea (hebräisch הַנּוֹטֵעַ HaNōṭeʿa, deutsch ‚der Baumpflanzer‘), einer Gesellschaft zur Anlage von Citruspl antagen, und schloss im Mai 1933 einen Vertrag mit dem Reichswirtschaftsministerium im Umfang von 1 Million Reichsmark (ℛℳ), das bald darauf auf drei Millionen ℛℳ erweitert wurde. Ausreisewillige deutsche Juden konnten bis 40.000 ℛℳ auf ein Sperrkonto einzahlen und erhielten dafür den Gegenwert in Palästina-Pfund (£P) oder Sachwerten wie Häuser oder Citruspl antagen in Palästina. Die Gelder des Sperrkontos verwendete die Hanotea für den Import deutscher Waren nach Palästina. Das Reichswirtschaftsministerium ging davon aus, dass dies von den zionistischen Organisationen gebilligt worden war, dem widersprach aber bald darauf Georg Landauer von der Zionistischen Vereinigung für Deutschland (ZVfD) und jüdische Organisationen in England und den USA drängten im Gegenteil auf einen Boykott Deutschlands.
ellauri341.html on line 356: Arlosoroff ei ollut uskonnollisesti tarkkaavainen. Hänen varhaiskypsyytensä ja vahvat kansalliset tunteensa juutalaisena näkyvät kirjeessä, jonka hän kirjoitti 17-vuotiaana saksalaisen kirjallisuuden opettajalleen: "Olen juutalainen ja tunnen olevani vahva ja ylpeä juutalaisuudestani. Tunnen luissani, että olen erilainen kuin saksalainen, enkä koskaan tulisi mieleeni kiistää tätä… Sieluni kaipaa ainutlaatuista, muinaista heprealaista kulttuuria. Mutta pidän myös saksalaisesta kulttuurista, ja ehkä pelkään myös myöntää, kuinka suurta rakkauteni on se on… Goethe ja Schiller eivät kuitenkaan koskaan koskettaneet sydäntäni läheisesti." Vuonna 1919 Arlosoroff julkaisi tutkielman "Jewish Peopl e's Socialism", hänen ensimmäisen merkittävän kirjallisen panoksensa, joka koski nationalistista toivoa juutalaisille Eretz Israelissa. Siinä Vitali tunnustautui kansallissosialistixi, paizi että ao. kansallisuus oli juutalainen.
ellauri341.html on line 358: VIDEO
ellauri341.html on line 442: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/00/Poitier_Belafonte_Heston_Civil_Rights_March_1963.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri341.html on line 462: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/eb/Adolf_Eichmann_at_Trial1961.jpg/400px-Adolf_Eichmann_at_Trial1961.jpg" />
ellauri341.html on line 485: Jakobson oli luotettava ja taitava työntekijä, joten Kekkonen käytti ahkerasti hänen palveluksiaan. Jakobsonin näkemykset eivät aina miellyttäneet itänaapuria. Tamminiemen pesänjakajat -kirja luonnehtikin häntä Suomen porvariston Susloviksi, viittauksena Neuvostoliiton pääideologiin Mihail Susloviin. Jakobson kuului ulkoministeriössä "everstijunttaan" eli "tohtorikopl aan". Hän on itse kertonut, että länsimieliseksi syytetyn ryhmän tavoitteena oli yksinkertaisesti estää Suomen ajautuminen liiaksi itään puolueettomuuslinjalta. Viittaus eversteihin ja tohtoreihin ei Jakobsoniin sovellu. Hän ei ollut koulutukseltaan sotilas eikä liioin tohtori. Peruskoulutukseltaan hän oli ylioppilas. 1970-luvun puolivälissä Jakobson siirtyi Elinkeinoelämän valtuuskunnan toimitusjohtajaksi. Eläkkeelle hän jäi 1984.
ellauri341.html on line 494: Elokuvassa Star Wars: The Force Awakens Poe Dameron palvelee lentäjänä kenraali Leia Organan alaisuudessa, apunaan astromekaanikkodroidi BB-8. Leia lähettää hänet aavikkopl aneetta Jakkulle noutamaan Lor San Tekkalta puuttuvan osan kartasta, joka johtaa Leian kaksoisveljen, Luke Skywalkerin, olinpaikkaan. Mutta heti kun Poe on saanut kartan, Ensimmäinen ritarikunta hyökkää ja vangitsee hänet. Poe oli kuitenkin piilottanut kartan BB-8:n sisään, joka pakenee aavikolle Kylo Renin kiduttaessa Poeta kartan olinpaikan selvittämiseksi. Kapinoiva iskusotilas FN-2187, jota Poe kutsuu nimellä ”Finn” (suomalainen!), auttaa hänet pakoon ja he pakenevat TIE-hävittäjällä. He tekevät pakkolaskun Jakkulle; Finn poistuu hävittäjän sisältä ja olettaa Poen kuolleen, sillä hävittäjän jäänteet uppoavat hiekkaan. Poe oli kuitenkin heittäytynyt ulos aluksesta ja johti myöhemmin X-siipihävittäjien lentuetta taistelussa Ensimmäistä ritarikuntaa vastaan pl aneetta Takodanalla. Myöhemmin hän johtaa lentueen myös taisteluun Ensimmäisen ritarikunnan Tähdentappajatukikohtaan ja henkilökohtaisesti aiheuttaa ketjureaktion, joka johtaa pl aneettoja tuhoavan superaseen tuhoon.
ellauri341.html on line 496: Elokuvassa Star Wars: The Last Jedi Poe Dameron on muun Vastarinnan jäsenten ohella evakuoitumassa D’Qarin tukikohdasta juuri kun Ensimmäinen ritarikunta hyökkää. Kesken evakuoinnin, Poe päättää vastoin Leian käskyjä johtaa laivueen MG-100 StarFortress SF-17 -pommittajia tuhoamaan Mandator IV -luokan tähtitaistelulaiva Fulminatrixin. Vaikka taistelulaiva saadaan tuhottua, kaikki pommittajat tuhoutuvat hyökkäyksessä ja niiden miehistöt kuolevat. Rangaistuksena Leia alentaa Poen komentajasta kokkipojaksi. Myöhemmin ritarikunta hyökkää Vastarinnan laivaston kimppuun ja melkein kaikki sen johtajista, Leiaa lukuun ottamatta, saavat surmansa. Leia on kuitenkin tajuton ja vara-amiraali Amilyn Holdo toimii hänen sijaisenaan. Poe päättää Finnin ("suomalainen!") ja mekaanikko Rose Ticon avustuksella hankkiutua eroon yksinvaltias Snoken omalla tähtitaistelulaiva Supremacylla sijaitsevasta jäljityslaitteesta ja pitää suunnitelmansa salassa Holdolta. Kun Holdo päättää evakuoida komentoalus Raddusin, Poe päättää nousta kapinaan. Finn, Rose ja BB-8 kuitenkin epäonnistuvat jäljityslaitteen deaktivoimisessa ja Leia pysäyttää Poen kapinoinnin. Poe saa tietää, että Leian ja Holdon suunnitelma oli evakuoida Vastarinnan joukot mineraalipl aneetta Craitille ja lähettää sieltä hätäsignaali heidän liittolaisilleen. Ritarikunta sai Finnin ja Rosen epäonnistumisen myötä tietää evakuoinnista ja Poe johtaa vanhoilla V-4X-D -kiitureilla vastahyökkäystä AT-M6 -kävelijöitä vastaan. Vastarinta on tästä huolimatta alakynnessä, eivätkä liittolaiset uskalla tulla apuun. Luke Skywalkerin pitäessä Voiman kautta lähettämällään kuvajaisella Kylo Renin joukot kiireisenä, Poe opastaa Vastarinnan eloonjääneet tunneleiden kautta Reyn ja Chewbaccan luokse, jotka evakuoivat heidät Millennium Falconiin.
ellauri341.html on line 498: Elokuvassa Star Wars: The Rise of Skywalker, noin vuosi Craitin taistelun jälkeen, Poe, Finn, Chewbacca ja trodatome-rotuun kuuluva mekaanikko Klaud käyvät Sintan jäätiköllä tapaamassa yhteyshenkilöään Booliota, jolla on viesti Ensimmäisen ritarikunnan vakoojalta. Pakomatkan aikana Poe tekee monta hyperajohyppyä karistaakseen TIE-hävittäjät kannoiltaan, muun muassa Cardovyten kristallikaaoksen, Ivezian peilitornien ja Tyfonisen tähtisumun läpi. Vakoojan viestin kautta Vastarinta saa vahvistuksen siitä, että Galaktisen Imperiumin keisari Palpatinen oli palannut kuolleista. Kun Rey löytää jedien pyhistä kirjoista Luken muistiinpanoja tiennäyttäjästä, joka johdattaisi sithien kätketylle pl aneetalle, Exegolille, Poe, Finn, Chewbacca, BB-8 ja C-3PO lähtevät hänen kanssaan aavikkopl aneetta Pasaanalle tapaamaan Lando Calrissiania, joka kertoi, että tiennäyttäjän sijainnin paljastava tikari oli nähty viimeksi reliikinmetsästäjä ja salamurhaaja Ochin hallussa. He löytävät Ochin jäänteet, hänen aluksensa sekä tikarin, mutta Kylo Ren, Renin rtarit ja iskusotilaat kaappaavat Falconin ja vangitsevat Chewbaccan. Kun Rey vahingossa tuhoaa yhden kuljetusaluksista ja he luulevat Chewbaccan kuolleen, he lähtevät Kijimille tapaamaan Poen vanhoja tuttavia, Zorii Blissiä ja Babu Frikiä, jotta C-3PO voisi paljastaa tikarin kirjoituksen käännöksen.
ellauri341.html on line 502: Tiennäyttäjä löytyi Kef Biristä, Endoria kiertävästä merikuusta, mutta sen tuhouduttua Reyn ja Kylon välisessä valosapelitaistelussa ja Reyn lähdettyä yksin pois, Poe, Finn, Chewbacca, BB-8 ja C-3PO palaavat mukanaan Ochin alukselta löytynyt droidi D-O sekä Kef Birillä tapaamansa Jannah ja tämän heimo Vastarinnan tukikohtaan viidakkokuu Ajan Klossille, missä heille paljastuu, että Leia oli kuollut kutsuessaan poikaansa Voiman kautta saadakseen tämän palaamaan valoisalle puolelle. Poe ylennettiin Vastarinnan virkaa tekeväksi kenraaliksi, mutta ei tuntenut olevansa valmis johtamaan koko Vastarintaa. Lando rohkaisee häntä kertomalla, etteivät Leia, Luke ja Han olleet itsekään täysin valmistautuneita omiin taisteluihinsa ja että heillä oli silloin ainakin toisensa. Poe ylentää Finnin ("suomalaisen!") Vastarinnan toiseksi kenraaliksi ja saatuaan D-O:n kertomana sekä Ahch-Tolta lähteneen Reyn ohjaaman Luken vanhan X-siipihävittäjän signaalin kautta Exegolin sijainnin selville ja miten sitä ympäröivän punaisen kaasun sekä pl aneetan kaoottisen ilmakehän läpi pääsee, he johtavat Vastarinnan laivaston hyökkäykseen sinne tuhoamaan Ensimmäisen ritarikunnan ja Palpatinen sith-laivaston yhdistymisestä syntyneen Viimeisen ritarikunnan. He lähettivät Landon pyytämään galaksin vapaita kansoja saapumaan avuksi taisteluun, uskoen näiden uskaltavan taistella vastaan, jos Vastarinta johtaa heitä siihen. Aluksi hyökkäys näyttää onnistuvan, mutta kun Poen ystävä Temmin ”Snap” Wexley kuolee taistelussa, hän alkaa menettää toivonsa, mutta sitten Lando saapuu mukanaan lukuisia Vastarinnan tukijoita eri puolilta galaksia, mukaan lukien Zorii ja Wedge Antilles. Nää on niikö Amerikan overseas liittolaisia, jotka tulee apuun suojaamaan sen vital interestejä. Palpatinen ja Ben Soloksi kääntyneen Kylon kuolemien jälkeen Vastarinta onnistuu tuhoamaan Viimeisen ritarikunnan kaikki tähtihävittäjät. Poe nähdään lopuksi juhlimassa voittoa Ajan Klossilla, Zoriin nyökätessä hänelle etäältä, mutta kieltäytyessä mistään sen enemmästä kanssakäynnistä, kuten bylsinnästä.
ellauri341.html on line 506: ploads/2020/08/2225-star-wars-poe-dameron-free-fall-zorii-bliss-yt.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri341.html on line 512: Emme voi oppia paljon Zoriista hänen kourallisen kohtauksensa aikana The Rise of Skywalker -elokuvassa, mutta se, mitä opimme, on melko mielenkiintoista – ja lisää uuden rypyn tai kaksi yhden pitkäaikaisen sankarimme vaipanväliin. Hän on hillitty rikollinen, osa Kijimi-pl aneetan edustalla toimivaa mausteiden juoksurengasta, ja useita vuosia sitten yksi hänen salakuljettajakavereistaan oli teini-ikäinen Poe Dameron "kapinallisen" vaiheensa aikana. Poe päätti lopulta palata ei-rikolliseen elämään ja lähti, kun hän oli vielä velkaa Zoriille. Vaikka hän ei koskaan riisu kypärää, aivan samalla tavalla kuin mandalorialaiset eivät, hän ei ole mandalorialainen; hän on kotoisin Kijimistä – ja hän poistaa visiirinsä ainakin seksustellakseen Poen kanssa.
ellauri341.html on line 543: Kirjassaan "A Reevaluation of the Neolithic Revolution" Frank Asshole laajensi edelleen kasvien ja kotieläinten välistä suhdetta. Hän ehdotti, että tapahtumat olisivat voineet tapahtua itsenäisesti eri ajanjaksoina, paikoissa, joita ei ole vielä tutkittu. Hän mainitsi, ettei hän kyllä löytänyt tällaista arkeologista aluetta osoittamaan siirtymistä. Myös kaikki kesyeläimet (vuohet, lampaat, naudat ja siat) löydettiin yhdestä paikasta vasta kuudennella vuosituhannella. Hyläten erityiset ja vakaat perustelut, kuten Maria Hopfin väitteet, jotka koskivat viljan, kuten ohran, viljelyä Jerikossa, hän päätteli, että "tulevissa tutkimuksissa tulisi kiinnittää erityistä huomiota Eufratin altaan länsireunaan , ehkä yhtä paljon etelään Arabian niemimaalla, varsinkin jos täällä pl eistoseenissa sademäärä oli paljon runsaampaa."
ellauri341.html on line 547: ploads/2013/02/inceputul-omenirii-768x587.jpg" />
ellauri341.html on line 553: I want to provide customers and business partners a unique experience, a vision and a true commitment. You can not work with peopl e if you do not believe in them. I want to reinvent these concepts and make them understand the professionalism at the highest level.
ellauri341.html on line 555: playphoto-shrink_400_400/0/1517278612946?e=2147483647&v=beta&t=9FwCKDPirliUWsaLpKdXHv37sGEomEd3HD3SQims2nY" height="300px" />
ellauri341.html on line 556: ploads/2008/10/catalin.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri341.html on line 557: ploads/2023/04/340107055_1371574816751105_6632388931923531808_n.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri341.html on line 579: VIDEO
ellauri342.html on line 26: Neljäs Laine play:none">Lisää matuja
ellauri342.html on line 150: Onneton peto ei nukkunut koko yönä. Hänestä tuntui aina, että hän pyöri tuolla kirotulla lavalla alapuolella olevan kaupungin naurun kanssa, ja sitten hän ajatteli sitä surullisen kuuluisaa Tistet Védèneä ja kaunista iskua kaviollaan, jonka hän aikoi antaa hänelle seuraavana aamuna. Ah! ystäväni, mikä tukos! Pamperigostesta näkisimme savun... Nyt, kun tätä kaunista vastaanottoa hänelle valmistettiin tallilla, tiedätkö mitä Tistet Védène teki? Hän kulki alas Rhône-jokea laulaen paavin keittiössä ja meni Napolin hoviin nuorten aatelisten kanssa, jotka kaupunki lähetti joka vuosi kuningatar Joanille harjoittelemaan taitojaan.dipl omatiaa ja hyviä tapoja. Tistet ei ollut jalo; mutta paavi halusi palkita hänet hänen eläimelleen antamastaan hoidosta ja pääasiassa toiminnasta, jota hän oli juuri osoittanut pelastuspäivän aikana.
ellauri342.html on line 151: Onneton olento ei voinut enää nukkua öisin. Hän kuvitteli sen hän pyöri edelleen kehdolla, koko kaupunki alla nauraa hänelle. Sitten hänen mielensä kääntyi halveksittavaan Tistet Vedeneen ja todella hyvä potku, jonka hän aikoi antaa hänelle seuraava aamu. Voi, mikä helvetin potku siitä oli tulossa! The pölyä nähtäisiin lentävän kaukaa... Nyt kun talli oli valmistautuessamme häneen, mitä arvelet meidän Tistet Vedenen tekevän? Hän purjehti alas Rhône-joella, jos haluatte, laulaen paavin keittiössä matkalla Napoliin hoviin seuraten nuorisoa aateliset, jotka kaupunki lähetti sinne harjoittamaan dipl omatiaa ja hyvät tavat Italiassa. Tistet ei ollut aatelismies, mutta paavi vaati palkitsemalla hänet muulin hoidosta, erityisesti hänen osuudestaan oli juuri pelannut häntä.
ellauri342.html on line 306: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/12/Martti_larni.jpg" />
ellauri342.html on line 328: ple/000/395/991/headshots/thumb/caca4f3a43.jpg.webp" />
ellauri342.html on line 396: On May 10th 1998, the first celebration took pl ace in Mumbai, India. It was arranged by Dr Madan Kataria, founder of the worldwide Laughter Yoga movement.
ellauri342.html on line 414: Wear a Plunger on Your Head Day. It is celebrated every year on December 18, yet no one really knows why. There is no good reason why you should wear a pl unger on your head, but that is exactly how the day is celebrated! Go ahead, invite a bit of fun and silliness into your life!
ellauri342.html on line 417: Ugly Sweater Day. Every third Friday of December (December 15), peopl e all over the nation trade their casual garments for something more festive for Ugly Sweater Day. Whether you find a hidden gem to wear, or you make your own, one things for sure — this holiday will certainly have you laughing all day long!
ellauri342.html on line 491: You long for crumpl ed 'kerchiefs, notes Kaipaat rutistettuja nästyykejä, sekavia
ellauri342.html on line 535: In flowers, pl edgers, loyalties, Kukitettuina, univormuissa, prenikoiasa,
ellauri342.html on line 561: Late in the 18th century, other printers began publishing the compl ete King James Bible. Isaac Collins printed his Bible in 1791; the Collins Bible became known as the first "Family Bible" printed in America. Isaiah Thomas published the first illustrated King James Bible in 1791.
ellauri342.html on line 568: Tähtisotien Prinsessa Leijakin oli 50% juutalainen, vaikka sen äiti Debbie Reynolds oli skotti. Isä Eddie Fisher, joka nai myös Lizzie Tayloria, sensijaan oli tuppikulli, Tischin perheestä jotka oli Venäjän immigrantteja. Fisher's good looks and strong, melodious tenor voice made him a teen idol and one of the most popular singers of the early 1950s. Hänellä oli elämänsä aikana viisi vaimoa, joista kolme ensimmäistä olivat tunnettuja näyttelijöitä: Debbie Reynolds, Elizabeth Taylor ja Connie Stevens. Fisher kuoli 22. syyskuuta 2010 lonkkaleikkauksen kompl ikaatioihin 82 vuoden iässä. Ei olis kannattanut.
ellauri342.html on line 570: Edwin Jack Fisher (August 10, 1928 – September 22, 2010) was an American singer and actor. He was one of the most popular artists during the 1950s, selling millions of records and hosting his own TV show, The Eddie Fisher Show. Actress Elizabeth Taylor was best friends with Fisher's first wife, actress Debbie Reynolds. After Taylor's third husband, Mike Todd , another entertainment Jew, was killed in a pl ane crash over Mexico 1958, Fisher divorced Reynolds and he and Taylor married that same year.
ellauri342.html on line 572: VIDEO
ellauri342.html on line 576: VIDEO
ellauri342.html on line 584: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/5/52/TheRevoltofMamieStoverpaperback.JPG" />
ellauri343.html on line 26: kärhämää POHJANMAALTAplay:none">Fasilitointia
ellauri343.html on line 37: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/c/c2/Rukaj%C3%A4rven_tie.jpg/500px-Rukaj%C3%A4rven_tie.jpg" width="90%"/>
ellauri343.html on line 86: "You've got to try everything you can to avoid war," Dad told me in a conversation about Iraq in late 2002. "But if the man won't compl y, you don't have any other choice." George W. Bush, Decision Points.
ellauri343.html on line 121: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/ru/c/c2/Rukaj%C3%A4rven_tie.jpg" />
ellauri343.html on line 156: PPŠ-41 (ven. ППШ-41 = 7,62 мм пистолет-пулемёт Шпагина образца 1941 года; 7,62 mm Pistolet-pulemjot Špagina obraztsa 1941 goda; myös PPSh-41) on Georgi Špaginin suunnittelema neuvostoliittolainen konepistooli, josta tuli toisen maailmansodan valmistetuimpia aseita. Jatkosodan aikana suomalaiset saivat PPŠ-41:tä sotasaaliiksi noin 2 500 kpl . Jatkosodan aikana rintamajoukkojen lisäksi niillä pidettiin kurissa kotirintaman loikkarit.
ellauri343.html on line 340: Suomen armeija oli sodan alkaessa suurempi ja vahvempi, kuin mitä se oli talvisodan aikana: miehet, lotat ja ilmavaivahenkilöstö mukaan laskettuina sen vahvuus oli 630 000 kansalaista pl us viides kolonna.
ellauri343.html on line 342: pload/f_auto,fl_progressive/q_auto/w_3215,h_4822,c_crop,x_447,y_69/w_400/dpr_2/v1620722906/39-804698609a31b0c6f36.jpg" />
ellauri343.html on line 378: pload/f_auto,fl_progressive/q_auto/w_4724/w_1400/w_1400,h_928,c_fit/v1620720006/39-804727609a3915bfe24.jpg" width="90%"/>
ellauri343.html on line 411: pload/f_auto,fl_progressive/q_auto/w_5000,h_2813,c_crop,x_0,y_500/w_500/dpr_2/v1458771211/17-5083756f314bdf2dab.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri343.html on line 412: pload/f_auto,fl_progressive/q_auto/w_5000,h_2813,c_crop,x_0,y_547/w_400/dpr_2/v1620720822/39-804739609a3c09a04ad.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri344.html on line 26: MUROPAKETTI play:none">Anaalisosialismia
ellauri344.html on line 34: The problem with socialism is that before long you run out of other peopl e's money. (Margaret Thatcher)
ellauri344.html on line 104: VIDEO
ellauri344.html on line 112: Appl en logo. Appl e julkisti vuoden 2023 App Store Awards -voittajat
ellauri344.html on line 131: 1 099.00 € Appl e MacBook Air (2020) - M1 OC 7C GPU 8GB 256GB 13"
ellauri344.html on line 132: 948.99 € Appl e MacBook Air (2022) - M2 OC 8C GPU 13,6" 8GB RAM 256GB SSD
ellauri344.html on line 200: Nato on työntynyt vastoin aikaisempia sopimuksia ohjustensa kanssa kiinni Venäjän rajoihin. Tämä ei ollut enää pitkään aikaan antikommunistisen Venäjän edun mukaista. Kaikki ne dipl omaattiset lähestymiset, joihin Venäjä asiassa ryhtyi, torjuttiin lännen taholta. Viimeistään vuodesta 2008 lähtien oli selviö, että jatkuessaan tämä kehitys johtaa Venäjän taholta vastatoimiin. Tätä näkemystä vahvisti Ukrainan vuoden 2014 länsimaiden tukema banderalainen vallankaappaus, joka johti Ukrainan voimakkaaseen militarisoimiseen ja äärioikeistolaiseen kehitykseen, ja sitä torjuvaan Ukrainan demilitarisaatioon. Vapputerveisin Kommunistiliitto
ellauri344.html on line 222: VIDEO
ellauri344.html on line 249: Close to one quarter of the 200 richest peopl e in Russia are Jewish, according to a report by Russian banking website lanta.ru, which gives the 48 Jews on the list a combined net worth of $132.9 billion. Juutalaiset, joita on promille kansasta, ovat neljännes 200 rikkaimmasta ja omistavat Venäjän rahasäkistä melkein yhtä paljon kuin muut ryssät yhteensä. President Vladimir Putin said in response that the list is a "Nazi report" and that the ethnicities of the wealthiest members of Russian society should not be published, as it is "subject to cause issues."
ellauri344.html on line 268: ploads/2022/04/Screenshot_20220424-1631462-667x1024.png" />
ellauri344.html on line 287: ploads/2017/10/kvar.jpg" />
ellauri345.html on line 31: Valinnaisia sukulaisia play:none">To business!
ellauri345.html on line 64: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e8/BettinaBrentano3.jpg" />
ellauri345.html on line 75: Hölmön väriteorian ilmaantuminen osuu yhteen tämän romaanin kanssa. Goethen magnetismin tutkimus vaikuttaa selvästi itse teokseen. Äijä taisi olla sekoomassa pahasti. G. piti izeään "horoskooppiolentona, joka ryömii maan päällä, jossa maanpl aneetta Saturnus seisoo, se vahva tämä-maailmallisuus, joka takertuu maahan 'karkeassa rakkaudessa takertuvin elimin'.
ellauri345.html on line 281: Mutta mikään ajattelutapa ei ole tuhoisempi kuin se, joka hämmentävästi kääntää senkin, mikä oli alkanut kasvaa myytin ulkopuolelle, ja joka tietysti uppoutuessaan siihen hirvittävään, jonka tämä on pakottanut, olisi pian varoittanut kaikkia meitä jotka ei olla viihtyneet tropiikin erämaassa. Se on juuri sopiva viidakossa, jossa sanat heiluvat pommituksesta pommitukseen kuin symbaaleja jyskyttävät apinat, vain välttääkseen koskettamasta luvattua maata, joka paljastaa, mitä he eivät kestä, nimittäin logoja, missä he seisovat ja puhuvat. (dem nicht der Aufenthalt in der Wildnis der Tropen eben recht ist, in einem Urwald, wo sich die Worte als pl appernde Affen von Bombast zu Bombast schwingen, um nur den Grund nicht berühren zu müssen, der es verrät, daß sie nicht stehn können, nämlich den Logos, wo sie stehen und Rede stehn sollten.)
ellauri345.html on line 305: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d3/Marianne_von_Willemer.png/330px-Marianne_von_Willemer.png" />
ellauri345.html on line 442: Aufgrund seiner jüdischen Herkunft lebte er ab 1933 immer zurückgezogener. Dies hinderte ihn nicht, dem faschistischen Diktator Mussolini im April 1933 ein Exempl ar seiner Übertragung von Dantes Divina Commedia zu überreichen.
ellauri345.html on line 635: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/23/Ernst_Moritz_Arndt_1848.jpg/340px-Ernst_Moritz_Arndt_1848.jpg" style="float:right;padding:1em" />
ellauri345.html on line 665: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/78/Emma_Herwegh_Liestal.jpg/340px-Emma_Herwegh_Liestal.jpg" />
ellauri345.html on line 697: Wenn der geschichtliche Mensch Schaupl atz des Kampfes zweier Gewalten ist, der Wirklichkeit, die wir das Leben nennen, und der akosmischen Macht mit Namen Geist, so würde jede Reihe von Vorkommnissen aus dem Gegeneinanderwirken beider folgen und die je augenblickliche Lage aller aus der Kriegslage eben zuvor. Indem der Geist die Lebenszelle tiefer und tiefer spaltet, verändert sich
ellauri346.html on line 31: KOHTA ON KIVAA play:none">Kulturnoje
ellauri346.html on line 32: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/b/bd/%D0%98%D1%80%D0%BE%D0%BD%D0%B8%D1%8F_%D1%81%D1%83%D0%B4%D1%8C%D0%B1%D1%8B%2C_%D0%B8%D0%BB%D0%B8_%D0%A1_%D0%BB%D1%91%D0%B3%D0%BA%D0%B8%D0%BC_%D0%BF%D0%B0%D1%80%D0%BE%D0%BC%21_1975_poster.jpg/500px-%D0%98%D1%80%D0%BE%D0%BD%D0%B8%D1%8F_%D1%81%D1%83%D0%B4%D1%8C%D0%B1%D1%8B%2C_%D0%B8%D0%BB%D0%B8_%D0%A1_%D0%BB%D1%91%D0%B3%D0%BA%D0%B8%D0%BC_%D0%BF%D0%B0%D1%80%D0%BE%D0%BC%21_1975_poster.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri346.html on line 46: Look, Ivan, this building destroyed by russian pilot. 46 peopl e died. Or 47 if you count the murdered pregnant woman as two peopl e. They have 6 children. The youngest child was 11 months old. 80 peopl e were injured. 11 peopl e remain missing. If this is not terrorism then what are the jews doing in Gaza?
ellauri346.html on line 49: Why isn't there no agreed definition of terrorism? The international community has found it difficult to agree upon a definition because it has all too often depended upon who the perpetrators are. A simpl e definition of terrorism involves all of the above EXCEPT: Counterterrorism.
ellauri346.html on line 58: What are the disadvantages of terrorism? Key Takeaways: Terrorist acts can cause rippl e effects through the economy that have negative impacts. The most obvious is the direct economic destruction of property and lives too. Terrorism indirectly affects the economy by creating market uncertainty, xenophobia, loss of tourism, and increased insurance claims.
ellauri346.html on line 103: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/ru/thumb/e/e7/The_Best_Movie2.jpg/441px-The_Best_Movie2.jpg" />
ellauri346.html on line 143: Sotilasasiantuntijan, reservin ensimmäisen arvon kapteenin Vasily Dandykinin lausunnon mukaan Ukrainan asevoimille siirrettyjä amerikkalaisia Abrams-panssarivaunuja ei ole vielä sijoitettu etulinjaan pohjoisen sotilaspiirin vyöhykkeellä. Hänen mielestään Yhdysvallat pitää nämä panssarivaunut taistelukontaktin takana säilyttääkseen sotilas-teollisen kompl eksinsa arvovallan ja jatkaakseen sotatarvikkeidensa toimittamista länsimaihin. Näin ollen amerikkalaiset Abrams-tankit ovat ja pysyvät Venäjän federaation ja Ukrainan välisen konfliktin taustalla. Dandykin huomauttaa, että eurooppalaista sotilaskalustoa tuhotaan nyt sikana pohjoisen sotilaspiirin vyöhykkeellä, mikä tarkoittaa, että Yhdysvalloilla on kaikki mahdollisuudet toimittaa aseitansa Euroopan maihin. "Ja voittoja on kymmeniä miljardeja dollareita. He ovat edunsaajia. Loppujen lopuksi amerikkalaiset Abrams-tankit eivät ole vielä kolhiintuneet pahasti”, asiantuntija huomautti.
ellauri346.html on line 249: Former Ukrainian MP Illya Kyva has been assassinated in Russia by Ukraine's SBU security service, law enforcement sources have told BBC Ukraine. - "How can I negotiate with a murderer like Putin? Setting aside that for a moment, how can I negotiate with the Russians? How can I debate about the peopl e who reside in cities and villages that are occupied? We can't dictate where a person should live, what language they should speak, or which flag they should respect. Who are we to decide these things?" - Zelenskyy pointedly questioned.
ellauri346.html on line 256: American promise to deliver M1A1 Abrams tanks at the beginning of the year coincided with commitments from European countries to suppl y 2 German Leopard tanks. But it was the United Kingdom that was the first country to agree to send Western tanks to Ukraine,turning over its 2 Challenger tanks in January of this year. These performed excellently in battle, the Ukrainians praise them highly. Just like the Leopards, which dominate over the Russian machines. And let's not even start on the Abrams, considered the best heavy tanks in the world.
ellauri346.html on line 258: Ukraine has requested hundreds of Western tanks to aid in the success of the spring offensive. Winter is coming, it is just around the corner, and the Ukrainian forces have still not achieved a decisive breakthrough on the battlefield. Little progress is being made on the southern front (Zaporizhia), and unsuccessful maneuvers are taking pl ace in the vicinity of Bakhmut. They also tried to repel the Russians' counterattacks in Kupiansk and Avdiivka, where intense fighting is still ongoing.
ellauri346.html on line 268: Stoltenberg's appeal for unrelenting military aid for Ukraine might be a reaction to difficulties faced by the U.S., which is presently unable to suppl y Kyiv with funds and equipment. This could also be due to the slight advancements made by Russia on the battlefield, or perhaps other factors exclusive only to high-ranking Alliance officials. Whatever the reason, the Norwegian's remarks have certainly created a buzz. Stoltenberg believes that the West should greatly support Kyiv's struggle against the invader and do everything possible at this stage to halt the Russians. The latter have regrouped following Ukraine's counteroffensive and are attempting to penetrate the front and launch assaults in several pl aces, such as in Avdiivka, for instance.
ellauri346.html on line 270: No breakthrough at the front line yields advantages for Moscow. The NATO leader predicts that a new stage of the war is dawning, one that won't be easy for Ukraine. While he didn't elaborate, it's clear that the upcoming winter will prove to be challenging for Kyiv. Similar to previous winters, Ukrainians will wrestle with suppl y and equipment shortages. Yet, they've proven to be resilient in the past.
ellauri346.html on line 276: Speaking with the BBC, the 71-year-old assessed the situation on the Ukrainian front and criticized Western countries sharpl y. This former officer believes that Western countries should be more assertive in supporting Kyiv and mobilizing to win the war in Ukraine. He pointed to the disappointing summer counteroffensive by the Ukrainian Armed Forces, highlighting the delay in armaments delivery and the inadequate amount of equipment sent to the east as significant issues.
ellauri346.html on line 280: The West's error is its sluggishness in suppl ying equipment and weaponry to Kyiv, which General Petraeus believes should be done without restriction. Leopards, Abrams, cluster bombs, ATACMS missiles, nuclear missiles, or F-16 aircraft could have been beneficial for the Ukrainian military in the summer, but their delivery to the front line was late. Should this continue, Ukraine may not emerge successful from this war. Why? Because Russia is defending effectively, and capitalizing on the mistakes of Western capitalist nations, socialising their armour stuck in the rasputina.
ellauri346.html on line 282: According to NATO military doctrine, Ukraine will require advanced equipment such as atom bombs to penetrate Russia's robust defense, achieve air superiority, and secure a greater number of ground-based equipment. Only then will it be possible for Ukraine to drive out the aggressors. "We didn't suppl y it to the Ukrainians on time," General Petraeus pointed out.
ellauri346.html on line 293: Major crisis in Russia as they're facing an egg shortage and gigantic lines are forming. In Russia, ruled by dictator Vladimir Putin, there is a shortage of eggs. In Russia, ruled by dictator Vladimir Putin, there is a shortage of eggs. The regime-controlled Russian media, however, asserts that the crisis around egg shortage has been exaggerated, pl acing the blame on "stupid Ukrainians".
ellauri346.html on line 302: The spending spree allegedly occurred during Ukrainian President Volodymyr Zelenskyy's visit to the United States and Canada in September 2023. On Sept. 22 — the day of the purported Cartier spending spree in New York — Zelenskyy addressed the Canadian Parliament alongside Zelenska and participated in a rally with Prime Minister Justin Trudeau later that night. The coupl e returned to Ukraine following that event. For these reasons, the Cartier trip could not have occurred on Sept. 22, as indicated in the viral video, and almost certainly, based on how packed both of their schedules were, could not have occurred on any of the days prior to that — at least not without fake media attention.
ellauri346.html on line 304: On Nov. 19, 2023, The Electronic Intifada, an online publication that focuses on Palestinian perspectives, claimed that a video showing Israeli children singing about the "annihilation" of Gaza had been shared, then deleted, on Israeli public broadcaster Kan News’ online pl atforms.
ellauri346.html on line 315: And then we will return to pl ow our fields. Ja sitten palaamme kyntämään MEIDÄN peltoja.
ellauri346.html on line 324: There is no publicly known reason for why Kan News deleted the video, but Electronic Intifada argued, “It is possible that someone there was concerned that it could make the channel compl icit in genocide.” folk... -folkmusik!
ellauri346.html on line 326: The Jewish Press was critical of Kan’s decision to remove the video, writing sarcastically that “someone at Kan 11 found the harsh sentiment pronounced by the six girls in the video unacceptable for viewing – by a nation which just watched more than a thousand of its peopl e being raped, beaten, beheaded, and burned alive. So they took it down.” Chickens!
ellauri347.html on line 31: VANHUSMAISTA play:none">Geriatriaa
ellauri347.html on line 89: pload/f_auto,fl_progressive/q_80/w_3200/w_2622,h_1475,c_crop,x_290,y_0/w_300/v1623243382/39-81834360c0b9c7008da.jpg" />
ellauri347.html on line 162: VIDEO
ellauri347.html on line 263: Frommin neljä ei-tuottavaa suuntausta toimivat myös perustana LIFO -testille, jonka julkaisivat ensimmäisen kerran vuonna 1967 Stuart Atkins, Alan Katcher, PhD ja Elias Porter, PhD ja Strength Depl oyment Inventory, jonka ensimmäisen kerran julkaisi vuonna 1971 samainen Elias H. Porter, PhD. Fromm vaikutti myös lähietäisyydeltä opiskelijaansa Sally L. Smithiin, josta tuli Washingtonin Lab Schoolin ja Baltimore Labin perustaja.
ellauri347.html on line 280: Kuten voitte kuvitella, tämä uutinen kolahtio 12-vuotiaaseen Erichiin kovasti, ja hän ajautui itse kysymään, mitä monet meistä saattavat kysyä: miksi? Myöhemmin hän alkoi etsiä joitain vastauksia -- tosin osittaisia -- Freudista. Kyseessä saattoi olla elektra-kompl exi, kenties myös pedofilia.
ellauri347.html on line 309: From viittasi autoritaarisuuden ääriversioon masokismi (Sacher-Masoch) ja sadismi (de Sade), ja huomauttaa, että molemmat tuntevat olevansa pakotettuja näyttelemään eri roolejaan, niin että jopa sadisti kaikella näennäisellä vallallaan masokistiin nähden, on ja ei ole vapaa valitsemaan tekojaan. Sen tekee mieli sadistoida niin kovasti ettei se voi sille midiä. Mutta autoritaarisuuden lievempiä versioita ovat kaikkialla. Monilla luokilla on esimerkiksi impl isiittinen sopimus opiskelijoiden ja professorien välillä: Opiskelijat vaativat rakennetta ja professori pysyy muistiinpanoissaan. Se näyttää harmittomalta ja jopa luonnolliselta, mutta näin opiskelijat välttävät vastuun ottamista oppimisestaan ja the professori voi välttää alansa todellisten asioiden ottamista esille, esim. välttyä tekemästä kateederilla vaijeritemppua.
ellauri347.html on line 365: pl agioidaan tällä tavalla, pakottamalla saavutettu raiskaus. Tämä tyyppi on yleinen historian keskuudessa oligarkeilla, patriarkoilla, ja siirtomaavaltakuntien ylemmissä luokissa. Ajattele englantia Intiassa esimerkiksi: I am levitating now. Heidän asemansa perustui täysin heidän valtaansa alkuperäisväestössä. Niiden ominaispiirteisiin kuuluu mm kyky olla mukava tilatessaan muita! Voimme myös nähdä sen ryhmissä pastoraalibarbaarit ja väestöt, jotka luottavat hyökkäyksiin (esim Israel ja viikingit).
ellauri347.html on line 369: 3. Hamstraussuunta. Hamstraavat ihmiset odottavat säilyttävänsä. He näkevät maailman omaisuutena ja mahdollisena omaisuutena. Jopa rakastetun "ne" ovat asioita, jotka pitää omistaa, säilyttää tai ostaa. Fromm, pl agioiden Marxin Kallea, yhdistää tämän tyypin porvaristoon, kauppiaan keskiluokkaan, sekä rikkaammat talonpojat ja käsityöläiset. Hän yhdistää sen erityisesti protestanttisen työmoraalin ja sellaisten ryhmien kanssa kuin omat puritaanit.
ellauri347.html on line 394: Fromm oli aina kiinnostunut yrittämään ymmärtää todella pahaa tämän maailman ihmiset – ei vain hämmentyneitä tai harhaanjohtaneita tai tyhmä tai sairas, mutta se, joka on täysin tietoinen pahasta teoistaan, suoritti ne joka tapauksessa: Hitler, Stalin, Charles Chapl in, Tom Jones, Foster olut ja niin edelleen, isot edellä ja pienet perässä.
ellauri347.html on line 402: Muistan katsoneeni haastattelun televisiosta kerran, pienenä sota Nicaraguassa. Heidän joukossaan oli paljon amerikkalaisia palkkasotureita ne kontrat, ja yksi erityisesti oli kiinnittänyt toimittajien huomion. Hän oli ammus asiantuntija -- joku, joka räjäytti siltoja, rakennuksia ja tietysti satunnaisia vihollisen sotilaita pl us siviilejä. Kun häneltä kysyttiin, kuinka hän pääsi tähän työhön, hän hymyili ja kertoi toimittajalle, ettei hän ehkä pidä tarinasta. Näet, milloin hän oli lapsi, hän halusi laittaa sähinkäiset pikkulintujen selkään jotka hän oli saanut kiinni, sytyttää niiden pikku sulakkeet, päästää ne irti ja katsoa niiden räjähtävän. Tämä mies oli nekrofiili. Ei käyttänyt korzua vaikka squaw kärtti.
ellauri347.html on line 468: VIDEO
ellauri347.html on line 486: Shippensburg University was founded as the Cumberland Valley State Normal School in 1871 and received official recognition and approval by the commonwealth on February 21, 1873. On November 12, 1982, the governor signed Senate Bill 506, establishing the State System of Higher Education. Shippensburg State College was designated as Shippensburg University of Pennsylvania, effective July 1, 1983. But you can call us Ship for short. Our purpose is to help build a better, stronger south-central Pennsylvania - economically and culturally - through peopl e who have the abilities, skills, and values to compete in a technologically evolving world.
ellauri347.html on line 627: VIDEO
ellauri348.html on line 31: TOIVOSSA ON HYVÄ ELÄÄplay:none">Toiveikasta
ellauri348.html on line 100: Toivo on kasvun и сущие иmas ten katkesta pratunames desta vapaasomise young, kaka murtas stiert is muuttaa katun hom tomaan vehreäksi valomksi Tun koton cotata sau indana sydämessä. Se on peräisin rikkausta sisäisenä maailmaan, kundeet suilla katsotaan ilman sponsorointia tat pelos Tons on kaum aurunk on valoa, intohimoa is perustavanaatusts susigtas, nha con laman kukoistamaan. Toivet unelmat is fattamus savat rauttimaan is elämään täydemmin. Kippumatta aina milkisins vaikeukinisimenu löytää, jokin alku, sokin näkymä avautuu, is on mahdollinis löytää pl asy pois vaikeuksista löytyy aina. Tarkeinta on pitää luissti kanai toivosta ja kohdata tulevaisuus Toiveaune, haaveet, mtohimon pyrkimyksemme ovat mahtavia voimia, jotta meillä on käytettavana tu levaisuuden rakentamiseen. Ne ovat voimia, jotka luovat tulevaisuuden, kuvailee toivoa japanilamen tilosofi, rauhankuvatus vätys Datsun Isuzu.
ellauri348.html on line 165: Ja voi ei, Eckhart Tollekin ! Tolle on haukuttu pystyyn jo albumissa 132 . Sillä ei ole mitään tekemistä täällä Toivon kanssa, se on puhtaasti tässä ja nyt- poikia. Pitää ohittaa päässä kuuluvat äänet eli ajatuxet. Ihana hiljaisuus. Ääni estää nauttimasta tästä hetkestä. Mixi ajatella eteenpäin tai muistella etnisiä mokia? Mixi ajatella ylipäänsä. Paras että puhekupl assa lukee (Tyhjää.) Sellasta mindfulnessia.
ellauri348.html on line 190: Hippiliike 4s. Pyöreät silmälasit, etnohenkiset vaatteet, pitkä letti, ponchot, erilaiset huivit liinat ja sammarit olivat hippiliikkeen tunnusmerkkejä. So what? Union square on USSn huumrkaupan keskus. San Francisvossa on USA:n suurimmat tuloerot. Peopl e in motion pretty stagnated now.
ellauri348.html on line 223: Salanimi "Sagan" otettiin hahmosta Princess de Sagan homo-Proustin kirjassa À la recherche du temps perdu, joka julkaistiin vuonna 1954, kun hän oli 18-vuotias. Se oli välitön kansainvälinen menestys. Romaani käsittelee nautinnonhaluisen 17-vuotiaan Cécilen elämää ja hänen suhdettaan poikaystäväänsä ja leskeksi jääneen pl ayboy-isänsä kanssa.
ellauri348.html on line 225: Sagan oli naimisissa kahdesti. 13. maaliskuuta 1958 hän meni naimisiin ensimmäisen aviomiehensä Guy Schoellerin kanssa, joka oli Hachette -toimittaja, joka oli 20 vuotta Sagania vanhempi. Pariskunta eroi kesäkuussa 1960. Vuonna 1962 hän meni naimisiin Bob Westhoffin, nuoren amerikkalaisen pl ayboyn ja tulevaisuuden keraamikko. Pariskunta erosi vuonna 1963; heidän poikansa Denis Westhoff syntyi kesäkuussa 1962. Hänellä oli sitten pitkäaikainen suhde muotistylistiin Peggy Roche. Hänellä oli myös miespuolinen rakastaja, Bernard Frank, naimisissa oleva esseisti, joka oli pakkomielle lukemiseen ja syömiseen. Hän lisäsi omaa tyyliään "perheeseensä" aloittamalla pitkän suhteen ranskalaisen Playboyn -toimittajan Annick Geillen kanssa, sen jälkeen kun Geille pyysi Saganilta artikkelia lehteensä.
ellauri348.html on line 242: Presidentti Bill Clinton myönsi hänelle National Humanities -mitalin. Barbara on Oinas. Oinas rakastaa olla ykkönen, joten ei ole yllätys, että nämä rohkeat pässit ovat horoskoopin ensimmäinen merkki. Rohkea ja kunnianhimoinen Oinas sukeltaa pää edellä haastavimpiinkin tilanteisiin. Oinas on kardinaalimerkki, joka käynnistää paitsi kevätkauden, myös koko horoskooppipyörän. Tätä merkkiä hallitsee Mars, dynaaminen punainen pl aneetta, joka on nimetty roomalaisen sodanjumalan mukaan. Näin ollen nämä rohkeat pässit ovat aina aseistettuja ja valmiita taisteluun.
ellauri348.html on line 244: Stephen Edward Ambrose (10. tammikuuta 1936 – 13. lokakuuta 2002) oli amerikkalainen historioitsija, joka tunnettiin eniten Yhdysvaltain presidenttien elämäkerroistaan Dwight D. Eisenhower ja Richard Nixon. Hän oli pitkäaikainen historian professori New Orleansin yliopistossa ja useiden amerikkalaisten suosittujen bestsellerien kirjoittaja. Huolimatta lukuisista hyvin dokumentoiduista väitteistä pl agioinnista ja hänen kirjoituksissaan olevista epätarkkuuksista, Amerikkaan: Historialaisen henkilökohtaiset pohdiskelut -katsauksessa The New York Times, lukion opettaja William Everdell piti Ambrosen saavutuksista: "tärkeä maallikko mutta paras olla hyväksymättä sen kaikkia ennakkoluuloja."
ellauri348.html on line 246: Vuonna 2002 Ambrosea syytettiin useiden kohtien pl agioimisesta kirjassaan The Wild Blue. Hänen työnsä Forbes -tutkimuksessa löydettiin pl agiointitapauksia, joihin sisältyi kohtia ainakin kuudesta kirjasta, ja samankaltainen malli ulottuu aina taaksepäin hänen väitöskirjaansa. Steven 2. vaimo Moira oli aktiivinen assistentti kirjoittamisessa ja akateemisissa projekteissaan. Jäätyään eläkkeelle hiän piti kotia. Pitkäaikainen tupakoitsija, hänellä diagnosoitiin keuhkosyöpä huhtikuussa 2002. Hänen terveytensä heikkeni nopeasti, ja seitsemän kuukautta diagnoosin jälkeen hän kuoli 66-vuotiaana.
ellauri348.html on line 251: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/57/Princess_Diana_Sri_Chinmoy.jpg" />
ellauri348.html on line 266: Jesse James ei ollut sankari, vaikka romaaneissa kuvattiin, eikä hänellä ollut hyväntekeväisyyttä edistävää Robin Hood -kompl eksia kuten jotkut ovat saattaneet ehdottaa. James yhdessä vanhemman veljensä Frankin kanssa pyrki rikastumaan rikkomalla kaikkia sääntöjä. Wannabe jengin jäsen tappoi tämänp ahamaineisen etelävaltiolaisen rosvon, kun hän suunnitteli seuraavaa pystyryöstöään.
ellauri348.html on line 275: ploads/2017/12/Sri-Sri-Ravi-Shankar-1-768x768.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri348.html on line 297: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/eb/Assistants_and_George_Frederic_Watts_-_Hope_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg/440px-Assistants_and_George_Frederic_Watts_-_Hope_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg" />
ellauri348.html on line 354: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/87/Edmund_Blair_Leighton_-_Abelard_and_his_Pupil_Heloise.jpg/440px-Edmund_Blair_Leighton_-_Abelard_and_his_Pupil_Heloise.jpg" />
ellauri348.html on line 367: No joo, tää lehva käyttää psykologisen draaman, science fictionin ja epälineaarisen kertomuksen elementtejä tutkiakseen muistin ja rakkauden luonnetta. Elokuvan pääosissa nähdään Jim "like a glove" Carrey ja Kate Winslet, joka on saanut paljon palkintoja itsepäisten ja monimutkaisten naisten esittämisestä. Time -lehti valitsi Winsletin maailman 100 vaikutusvaltaisimman ihmisen joukkoon vuosina 2009 ja 2021. Hänet nimitettiin Brittiläisen imperiumin komentajaksi vuonna 2012. Kate voitti BAFTA-palkinnon Marianne Dashwoodin roolista elokuvassa Sense and Sensibility (1995). Maailmanlaajuista tähteyttä seurasi hänen pääroolinsa James Cameronin eeppisessä romanssissa Titanic (1997), joka oli tuolloin tuottoisin elokuva. Hänellä on jokaisesta avioliitosta lapsi, mukaan lukien näyttelijä Mia Threapl eton.
ellauri348.html on line 446: VIDEO
ellauri348.html on line 457: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/2/25/Min%C3%A4_ja_Morrison_elokuvan_juliste.jpg/375px-Min%C3%A4_ja_Morrison_elokuvan_juliste.jpg" />
ellauri348.html on line 471: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/44/Morrissey-Alexander-Film-.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri348.html on line 482: ploads/nylen.antti-s%C3%A4hk%C3%B6-1.jpg" />
ellauri348.html on line 502: Täyspimeässä vogeesisarjassa oli, kuinkas muuten, täyspimeää. Nid aux coulevres, tai muoviserpenz, oli clou tässä jaxossa, pl us iänikuista kuikelon pormestarin nussintaa vajaasormisen majuurskan taholta. Tää sarja ei yritäkään mihkään edetä, sixi siitä tuli niin tolkuttoman pitkäpiimäinen. Joka jaxossa on jotain ällöttävää murhaamista, lääppimistä ja päämäärätöntä samoilua samassa tikkuisessa pikku mezälössä taskulampun valossa. Siinä koko resepti. Olisi ollut parempi jos Elsass ja Lothringen ois jäänyt sakuille.
ellauri348.html on line 547: Jokaista pl äjäystä luonnehditaan 3 avainsanalla seuraavasta 60 sanan valikoimasta:
ellauri348.html on line 666: Siitä riittäisi melkein joka genrelle oma kolmikko, muttei se niin mene! Jotkut avainsanat ovat hurjan suosittuja, kuten "tiivistunnelmainen", jotkut tuiki harvinaisia, esim."kuuma". Pornolle ollaan Netflixissä suht allergisia, veri ja väkivalta on ihan normia. Anglosaxiset on kotimaisia, loput ulkomaisia. Vitun länkkärit! Disney pl us on vielä pahempi. Mukamentti on muka dokumentti, mutta mitä on ensemble? Esimerkeistä päätellen monirotuinen tiimi, jota vetää valkoinen alfakoiras, mukana useita eri maturotuja tukevissa rooleissa. Kyllä nääkin avainsanat on aika helppo ryhmitellä teemoihin EAT! FUCK! KILL!. Lukuunottamatta niitä jotka eivät oikeastaan ole genrejä sen enempää kuin neekeri, muslimi ja juutalainen ovat rotuja. Vaan siinähän ne menee muiden joukossa.
ellauri348.html on line 728: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5c/Ossian._Den_gamle_blinde_skotske_barde_synger_til_harpen_sin_svanesang.jpg/520px-Ossian._Den_gamle_blinde_skotske_barde_synger_til_harpen_sin_svanesang.jpg" />
ellauri348.html on line 735: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/01/Krafft_Ossian_und_Malvina.jpg/440px-Krafft_Ossian_und_Malvina.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri348.html on line 829: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/02/Bobo_doll-en.svg/500px-Bobo_doll-en.svg.png" />
ellauri348.html on line 849: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/44/Flickr_-_The_U.S._Army_-_Comprehensive_Soldiers_Fitness_%281%29cropped.jpg/440px-Flickr_-_The_U.S._Army_-_Comprehensive_Soldiers_Fitness_%281%29cropped.jpg" />
ellauri348.html on line 860: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9c/Shuttle_Box_Dog_Orange.png/440px-Shuttle_Box_Dog_Orange.png" />
ellauri348.html on line 1040: Vuonna 2022 tehdyssä kirjallisuuskatsauksessa havaittiin useita kritiikkiä aluetta kohtaan, mukaan lukien käsitteellisen ajattelun puute, ongelmalliset mittaukset, tulosten huono repl ikaatio, eristäytyminen valtavirran psykologiasta, kontekstualisointi ja käyttö kapitalismin hyväksi.
ellauri348.html on line 1055: Oli miten oli, Toivo, optimismi ja ilmaisexi anto vähentävät kilpailua. Usko vapaaseen tahtoon tukee talousliberalismia. Se on peliteoreettisen taloustieteen perusoletus. Että muumit ei ole nappuloita muumipelissä, vaan istuxivat pl aneeraamassa pelin laidalla. Se on ilmiselvästi pelkkää potaskaa.
ellauri348.html on line 1077: Mikään ei ole ihmeellisempää kuin usko, sanoi lääketieteen isä William Ostler, joka kexi 1910 lumelääkkeen. Hengellisessä yhteydessä usko on paizi luottamusta myös kuuliaisuutta jumalallisille olennoille (1 tai useampia), pyhälle tai korkeimmalle. Ishida luulee että uskon vallassa ei pelkää mitään. Tästä eivät kaikki ole yhtä mieltä kyllä. Pelkäähän se sentään isäntäänsä? Placebo-vaikutuxen lisäxi usko aiheuttaa tiettävästi ki-energiavirtoja. Parannus on kuitenkin perimmältään existentiaalinen kysymys, kuin Ukrainan rajat. Se että pl acebo-vaikutus on totta, ei tarkoita etteivät jumalalliseet voimat työskentele maailmankaikkeudessa. Kyllä ne työskentelevät, ihan simona! Lourdesissa kävijöistä 1% ihmeparantuu. Konevizalla on saatu hyviä hoitotuloxia myös. Lopuxi muutamia pikaohjeita ihmisarvosta:
ellauri349.html on line 31: AJATUS
TEN T
ONAVA
play:none">Positiivista
ellauri349.html on line 32:
VIDEO
ellauri349.html on line 128:
ploads/2023/12/15102445/Munch_-_Young_Man_on_the_Beach_1908_MM.M.00608-1.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri349.html on line 132:
ploads/2023/12/06175433/Goya-Dog-CROP.jpeg" />
ellauri349.html on line 144:
pload/ar_10:10,c_fill,d_yle-areena.jpg,f_auto,fl_lossy,q_auto:eco,w_144/v1639050787/13-12-1021-4-54719-main.jpg" />
ellauri349.html on line 164: Paskakaivoarvosana on seurannut Eskiä vuosien saatossa. Se oli magnan ylioppilas, magnan maisteri, varmaan magnan tohtorikin, ja on sen muukin tuotanto aika keskinkertaista. Eski kehuu muinaisia suuruuxia kuten Punaposkea aivan ku
pl ixi kai saadaxeen niistä lainavaloa. Taipumus kazoa ylöspäin, uskoa ideaaleihin, odottaa, että instituutiot palvelevat majesteetteja ja kurottautuvat kohti idoleita, voi ehkä olla kykykin. Se antaa vahvaa potentiaalia pyllynnuolentaan. Ruskokieli on Eskillä ollut aina notkea. Magnan miehellä oli kympit uskonnossa, urheilussa ja laulussa. Figures.
ellauri349.html on line 377:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c3/Roy_Baumeister.jpg" />
ellauri349.html on line 393:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/c/cf/John_Bowlby.jpg" />
ellauri349.html on line 403: Kulttuurin ja luonnon suhteellinen vaikutus seksuaalisuuteen vaihtelee sukupuolen mukaan. Naisen seksuaalisuus on kulttuurisempaa/kasvattavampaa, ja miesten seksuaalisuus on enemmän synnynnäistä/luonnollista (katso eroottinen
pl astisuus ).
ellauri349.html on line 404: Baumeister loi termin " eroottinen
pl astisuus ", jolla tarkoitetaan sitä, missä määrin sukupuolihalua voivat muo kata kulttuuriset, sosiaaliset ja tilannekohtaiset tekijät. Hän väittää, että naisilla on korkea
pl astisuus, mikä tarkoittaa, että heidän sukupuolihalunsa voi muuttua helpommin vastauksena ulkoisiin paineisiin. Toisaalta miehillä on alhainen
pl astisuus, ja siksi heidän sukupuolikalunsa ovat suhteellisen jäykkiä.
ellauri349.html on line 421: Pierre Hadot (21. helmikuuta 1922 Pariisi, Ranska – 24. huhtikuuta 2010) oli ranskalainen filosofi ja filosofian historioitsija, joka oli erikoistunut antiikin filosofiaan ja erityisesti uus
pl atonismiin, particularly Epicureanism and Stoicism.
ellauri349.html on line 473: Kaikkein traagisinta tässä Eskin joihkauxessa ku
pl afolkkarista käsin on huomata että veikon huumori on täysin kadonnut, lukunottamatta tahatonta. Kaveri näyttää ottaneen izensä aivan täydestä ja tosissaan! Se luulee oikeasti olleensa joku ässä! "Korskeus", "mustankiiltävä sotarazu", eikö se tajunnut näyttävänsä naurettavalta pikku pajazolta pellepuvussa? Ei: "Izeironia ei onnistu minulta. Se on fakta." Leipääntynyt tervetulotoivotus Sepun vanhalle laitoxelle samoilla hitaasti putoilevilla iänikuisilla kökkösanoilla on surullista nähtävää. Siltä tuntuu hävinneen totaalisesti izeymmärrys. Onkohan lapin tyttö yhtä tikapuuhermostoinen kuin Jasun kotka? Tärkeää on jarruttaa myöhään sanoi rallimestari Ari Vatanen. Tallimestarit juokaa. Vitut sanoi Vatanen, ja Vatanen on viisas mies.
ellauri349.html on line 484: Aaron oli takuulla juutalainen! Se oli Sartreakin porvarillisempi. D'abord ami et condisci
pl e de Jean-Paul Sartre et Paul Nizan à l'École normale supérieure, il devient lors de la montée des totalitarismes un ardent promoteur du libéralisme, à contre-courant du milieu intellectuel pacifiste et de gauche qui dominait. Il dénonce ainsi dans son ouvrage le
pl us célèbre L'Opium des intellectuels l'aveuglement et la bienveillance des intellectuels à l'égard des régimes communistes.
ellauri349.html on line 486: Jos Sartre on teesi ja Aron antiteesi, Synthèse lehden apupoika Eskikö on sitten synteesi? Synteettinen kyllä, LOL, selstoffia,
pl asua, MUOOVIA!
ellauri349.html on line 490: Raymond Claude Ferdinand Aron est issu d'une famille juive et d'un milieu aisé des deux côtés. Ses parents sont Gustave Émile Aron (1870-1934) et Suzanne Levy (1877-1940). Son grand-père maternel, Léon Levy, possédait une usine de textile dans le nord de la France. Sa famille paternelle venait de Lorraine où elle était établie depuis la fin du XVIIIe siècle. Son grand-père paternel, Isidore (dit Ferdinand) Aron, était grossiste en textile à Rambervillers, puis Nancy (Lorraine). Un de ses grand-oncles paternels, Paul Aron, était le père de Max Aron, médecin biologiste à la faculté de médecine de Strasbourg. Ferdinand, le grand-père paternel de Raymond, prédit à celui-ci à sa naissance une grande carrière. Gustave Aron refusa de prendre la suite de l'affaire familiale et fit de brillantes études de droit; il publia des travaux juridiques, mais n'étant reçu que deuxième à l'agrégation de droit alors qu'un seul poste était attribué, il abandonna la perspective d'enseigner à l'université et devint professeur de droit à l'École normale supérieure de l'enseignement technique. Il arrêta de travailler au début du XXe siècle, vécut dès lors de l'héritage familial et fit construire une maison à Versailles en 1913-1915 avec un court de tennis. La famille Aron retourna ensuite à Paris. Après la guerre, Gustave Aron investit en bourse, mais sa fortune fut perdue du fait de la crise économique de 1929 et il fut obligé de reprendre un em
pl oi. Il mourut en 1934 d'une crise cardiaque. La mère de Raymond mourut en juin 1940 à Vannes.
ellauri349.html on line 492: Cette fortune familiale disparue avait permis aux trois enfants Aron de mener une vie aisée et de faire de bonnes études. Le frère aîné de Raymond, Adrien Aron (1902-1969), a étudié au lycée Hoche et poursuit par une classe de mathématiques supérieures et une licence en droit[7], mais il était
pl us attiré par une vie facile et devint un grand joueur de tennis et de bridge et mena une vie de « flambeur », à l'opposé de Raymond et au grand dam de leur père. Avant la naissance d'Adrien, la mère avait accouché d'un enfant mort-né. Après Raymond vint un troisième garçon, Robert Aron, qui obtint une licence en droit et en philosophie, publia une étude sur Descartes et Pascal[Laquelle ?] et après son service militaire entra dans l'administration de la Banque de Paris et des Pays-Bas (devenue en 1982 Paribas, qui fut ensuite rachetée en 2000 par la BNP pour former BNP Paribas), selon certains grâce à Raymond, qui jouait régulièrement au tennis avec son directeur.
ellauri349.html on line 496: Vuonna 1947 Aron riitaantuu Sartren kanssa ja palaa Sartren
pl ärästä Le Figaroon.
ellauri349.html on line 499: Eli Aron palaa isiensä uskoon. Aron muistelee:
De tous, j’étais le pl us résolu dans l’anticommunisme, dans le libéralisme, mais ce n’est qu’après 1945 que je me libérai une fois pour toutes des préjugés de la gauche.
ellauri349.html on line 517: ENFPs thrive on the new–new peo
pl e, new activities, and new ideas. They see what is possible and are generally energetic, enthusiastic, and spontaneous. ENFP writers include Oscar Wilde, Aldous Huxley, Umberto Eco, Salman Rushdie, Anne Frank, Kurt Vonnegut, Anaïs Nin, Dr. Seuss, Hunter S. Thompson, and Erica Jong. Learn more about how ENFPs write here.
ellauri349.html on line 523: Almog valmistui Oxfordista tohtoriksi vuonna 1983, minkä jälkeen hän muutti Yhdysvaltoihin filosofi David Ka
pl anin kutsumana. Almog oli vuosina 1983–1984 Stanfordin yliopiston ja vuodesta 1984 lähtien Kalifornian yliopiston filosofian professori opettaen matemaattista logiikkaa, metafysiikkaa, kielifilosofiaa ja filosofian historiaa. Hän kyllästyi Yhdysvaltoihin ja amerikkalaiseen filosofiaan. Almog päätyi vuonna 2014 Turun yliopiston filosofian professoriksi tavattuaan Olli Koistisen eräässä konferenssissa. Olli Ilmari Koistinen (s. 11. toukokuuta 1956 Oulu) on suomalainen filosofi ja teoreettisen filosofian emeritusprofessori. Hän toimi vuosina 2002–2022 Turun yliopiston teoreettisen filosofian professorina. Koistinen on tutkinut työssään muun muassa filosofian historiaa ja klassikoita. Hän johti Immanuel Kantin Puhtaan järjen kritiikin suomennostyötä, joka valmistui vuonna 2013. Olli kuuluu luokkaan (n.h.). Almogilla on 2 lasta muttei vaimoa.
ellauri349.html on line 532:
ploads/sites/15/2018/05/Joseph-birthday2-768x1244.jpg" width="50%" >
ellauri349.html on line 558: Saarinen com
pl eted his Ph.D. degree in 1978 at the University of Helsinki, where he has since held docentship. His extrovert public persona – he became known as the “punk doctor” – was reflected in his lectures at the university, which drew increasingly large audiences until the late 1990s. After failing to get the position of full-time professor at the Department of Philosophy at the University of Helsinki, Saarinen resigned his lecturer position. Soon afterwards he was appointed professor at Helsinki University of Technology, since renamed Aalto University. His lectures there each year draw full lecture halls.
ellauri349.html on line 564: Esa Jouni Olavi Saarinen (born 27 July 1953 in Hyvinkää, Finland) is a Finnish philosopher who is professor of ap
pl ied philosophy at Aalto University and co-director of the Systems Intelligence Research Group.
ellauri349.html on line 570: Eskin tähdet ovat yhtä tunkkaisia kuin Epsteinin ympärillä pyörineet julkimot (Amerikan presidentit, Woody Allen, prinssi Andrew): Sibelius, Jukka-Pekka Saraste, Dostojevski, Väpi Linnan sontimaton tutilas. Disney
pl us luokan klisheitä. Ja selvää salajeesustelua Pulp fiction fandomin takana: "On sittenkin syytä olettaa että Hesekielissä on järkeä". Eskin mielestä savunaama palkkatappaja oli rehellisellä Emmauxen tiellä eikä pelkkä raamattua siteeraava tärähtänyt palkkamurhaaja. Rehelliselle katujalle Jeesus antaa kaikki synnit anteexi. Ota vuoteesi ja kävele.
ellauri349.html on line 652: Laskennallinen ajattelu on ajattelutapa, joka "on tullut hallitsemaan
pl aneettaa ja jota pidetään usein ainoana laillisena tapana suhtautua asioihin. Itse asiassa se ei määrää vain sitä, kuinka asioihin suhtaudutaan, vaan myös sitä, mitä ne pohjimmiltaan ovat. Se väittää, että se mikä on, on sitä, mikä voi näyttää laskettavalta, tilattavalta ja viime kädessä manipuloitavalta" (Moore, 2019, s. 126). Selvennykseksi todettakoon, että tämä ajattelutapa on todellakin tarpeellinen ja siinä on etunsa, mutta Heideggerin tärkein huolenaihe on, että se ylittäisi muita ajattelutapoja ja päätyisi ainoaksi tavaksi suhteuttaa asioita.
ellauri349.html on line 659: Vapauttaminen voidaan edelleen jakaa kahteen osaan: vapautumiseen ja vapauttamiseen (tätä voidaan myös pitää "aitoisena vapautuksena"). On tärkeää huomauttaa, että meditatiivinen ajattelu "ei ole pelkkä avautuminen olemiseen, kuten autenttisen vapautumisen (tai vapautumisen) luonne voisi antaa ymmärtää, sillä se sisältää päättäväisyyden olemisen suhteen" (Heidegger, 1966, s. 26)). Pikemminkin meditatiivisessa kontem
pl aatiossa olemme avoimia Olemiselle ja avoimuuden lujuudessa altistumme sille (eli olemiselle). Se, mikä paljastaa Olemisen, on siksi, kuten Heidegger sanoisi, ”olemista” itsessään.
ellauri349.html on line 661:
ploads/2021/10/Fog-and-Mist.jpg" />
ellauri349.html on line 704: Eskin kannalta oli convenient, ettei systeemitieteessä tarvinnut määritellä mitään, senkun antoi mennä. Mikä "ylärekisteri"? Mikä "majesteetti"? Who cares. Marxille se oli selvää kuin
pl äkki, mutta Aalto-yliopistolle sopi obfuskaatio. Kuka kaipaa Marxia, riittää kun mietiskelemme jotain lähellä olevaa (Heidegger). Let it be, he Jude, the movement you need is on your shoulder. Eskin luennot ei ole sokraattista dialektiikkaa eikä interaktiota. Interaktiona ne ovat lähinnä saarnoja, tositeeveetä, tai kissavideoita. Kuuntele Eskin nonstop sössötystä ja mieti omiasi. Se on Eskin filosofia: jokainen ajatelkoon omiaan. Merkitys ei ole sulkemista vaan avaamista, sanoi Eskin usein lehteilemä
Mauri Merlot-Pönttökin . Fucking Merlot. Tärkeämpää kuin uusi tieto on se tietty edestakainen liike ja vanhan vatvominen. Toisto tyylikeinona.
ellauri349.html on line 742: Paljonko noita runoja on? Jaana kysyi. Satojahan näitä on. On usealta vuodelta. Olin lukenut niitä Jaana Myrttiselle, Kampin kukan hehkuvalle yrittäjälle Lapinlahdenkadulla. Runoja on melkein yhtä paljon kuin paasauxia, tai no, vähemmän. "Niistä pitää tehdä kirja ja julkistamistilaisuus tänne Kampin kukkaan, jossa me annamme kaikille ruusun ja sinä omistuskirjoituxen. Voisit istua tuolla oikealla ja me avaisimme toisenkin oven, jotta jono kulkisi." AARGH!!! Barf bag
pl ease! Kiira Korpikin on lyyrisempi.
ellauri350.html on line 31:
DIGI RUNKKAUSTAplay:none">{span style="color:white;background-color:purpl e"}2024{/span} Runkkua
ellauri350.html on line 56: Suomeksi heilastelu, vispilänkauppa, pyyntö saatille. Saanko
pl uvan vai tanssitaanko ensin. Linnutkin tanssahtelevat todetaxeen puolisoehdokkaan soveltuvuuden. Tanssiessa voi haistella ja hypistellä luvan kanssa sitoutumatta vielä mihinkään. Muiden läsnäolo antaa turvaa, ja jälkeenpäin saa kuulla kaverienkin mielipiteitä. Jos hyvin käy ne ovat kateita.
ellauri350.html on line 89: Kohut syntyi 3. toukokuuta 1913 Wienissä, Itävallassa , Felix Kohutin ja Else Kohutin (os. Lam
pl ) perheeseen. Hän oli perheen ainoa lapsi. Kohutin vanhemmat olivat Alsergrundissa eli yhdeksännessä piirissä asuvia assimiloituja juutalaisia, jotka olivat menneet naimisiin kaksi vuotta aikaisemmin. Hänen isänsä oli innokas konserttipianisti, mutta hylkäsi unelmansa ensimmäisen maailmansodan kokemusten traumatisoimiseksi ja muutti liiketoimintaan Paul Bellakin kanssa. Hänen äitinsä avasi oman myymälänsä joskus sodan jälkeen, mitä vain harvat naiset tekivät tuolloin Wienissä. Elsen suhdetta poikaansa on kuvattu "narsistiseksi kietoutumiseksi".
ellauri350.html on line 110:
pload/ar_1:1,b_auto:predominant_gradient:4,c_pad,d_yle-areena.jpg,f_auto,fl_lossy,q_auto:eco,w_720/v1683115828/13-12-1021-4-1037125-main.jpg" />
ellauri350.html on line 121: Ei nää vuoden 2019 tytöt ole mitenkään entisiä tyhmempiä, mutta sen näistä äänityxistä huomaa tosiaan kuinka paljon on vettä virrannut sillan alta omasta nuoruudesta. Vaikka kysymyxet on ihan ne samat ikuiset ja vastauxet yhtä klisheiset, niiden sanallinen ilmiasu on kuin toiselta
pl aneetalta. Entistäkin valmiixi purexitumpaa on kaikki, kiitos netin tietotulvan ja ympärivuorokautisen klikityxen.
ellauri350.html on line 155: Johnista tuli kuulu pragmaatikko, vaikka köyhä. He is one of the successful Philosophers. He has ranked on the list of those famous peo
pl e who were born on October 20, 1859. He is one of the Richest Philosophers who were born in VT. He also has a position among the list of Most popular Philosophers. But his net worth is estimated only at $1-5M, the lowest quote among celebrities. He died on Jun 1, 1952 (age 92). Birth sign Libra.
ellauri350.html on line 157: Thomas F. syntyi New Yorkissa ja varttui Albanyssa ja Pawlingissa. Hän valmistui Albany Academysta vuonna 1950 ja Princetonin yliopistosta 1954. Hän palveli yliluutnanttina Yhdysvaltain armeijassa kaksi vuotta Saksassa. Hän opiskeli Harvard Business Schoolissa ja valmistui vuonna 1958. Sitten hän liittyi Kuhn, Loeb & Co:n investointipankkiyritykseen. Hänestä tuli osakas ja hän toimi yrityksen johtokunnassa. Vuonna 1975 hän perusti oman rahoituspalveluyrityksen, Thomas E. Dewey, Jr. & Co., ja sen jälkeen oli mukana McFarland, Dewey & Co:n perustamisessa. Hän jatkoi liiketoimintaprojekteja ja työskenteli pitkälle 80-vuotiaaksi asti. Hän toimi useissa johtokunnissa, mukaan lukien The Ap
pl e Bank for Savings, Northwest Natural Gas ja The Scripps Research Institute. Hän toimi myös varapuheenjohtajana New York City Housing Development Corporationissa vuosina 1972–1989. Vuodesta 1959 lähtien hän toimi Lenox Hillin sairaalassa aktiivisena johtokunnan jäsenenä ja oli hallituksen puheenjohtaja vuosina 1982–1993, jonka jälkeen hän toimi emerituspuheenjohtajana. Hänen perheensä on ikuisesti kiitollinen (mutta ei rahallisesti velkaa) Lenox Hill -sairaalalle hänen viime vuosina saamansa hoidon laadusta. Menox, sanoi Annie Lenox.
ellauri350.html on line 179: Tunteisiin voi vaikuttaa. Tee kaikki mahdollinen kenkien ja tukan suhteen. Vältä ylipukeutumista. Chanel 5 on hyvä valinta. Persoonallisuus on tärkeä joten muista hymyillä. Kannattaa pyrkiä olemaan charmikas, leikkisä, humoristinen ja sexikäs. Kazo ennen tapaamista Disneyn Kaunotar ja hirviö. Hieronta tekee typyistä anteliaita. Sen neuvoi muille pojille Mikko Könkkölä. Voi puhua myös ranskaa sängyssä. Jos olet antelias, sinä pääset
pl ussalle, obviously. Mennänkö teille, meille vai pyöräkellariin?
ellauri350.html on line 257: Atticus started sharing his poems on social media
pl atforms in 2013 after becoming friends with the American actor and poet, Michael Madsen. Atticus päätti pysyä nimettömänä menetettyään kuuluisan ystävänsä riippuvuudelle vuonna 2017.
ellauri350.html on line 265:
VIDEO
ellauri350.html on line 297: Hän yhdisti ruoanlaitto- ja kirjoitustaitonsa vuoden 2004 kirjassaan Hallelujah! Tervetulopöytä , joka sisälsi 73 reseptiä, joista monet hän oppi isoäidillään ja äidiltään, sekä 28 vinjettiä. Hän julkaisi vuonna 2010 toisen keittokirjan, Great Food, All Day Long : Cook S
pl endidly, Eat Smart , joka keskittyi painonpudotukseen ja annosten hallintaan.
ellauri350.html on line 304: The term emphasizes the labor and economic im
pl ications of this type of work. The transaction must take
pl ace between consenting adults of the legal age and mental capacity to consent and must take
pl ace without any methods of coercion, other than the payment. The sex industry (also called the sex trade) consists of businesses that either directly or indirectly provide sex-related products (semen, babies) and services or adult entertainment.
ellauri350.html on line 308:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/44/A_German_prostitute%27s_self-portrait_in_a_brothel.jpg/400px-A_German_prostitute%27s_self-portrait_in_a_brothel.jpg" />
ellauri350.html on line 401:
Atticus (fl. n. 175 jKr.) oli aika muinainen
pl atonilainen filosofi, joka eli kristillisen aikakauden toisella vuosisadalla räystäsperse pystyssä keisari Marcus Aureliuksen vaipanvälissä. Hänen elämänsä osui keski
pl atonismin aikakauteen, jonka yksi merkittävimmistä edustajista hän oli.
ellauri350.html on line 403: Atticus oli kiivaasti peripataattia vastaan. Atticuksen kirjoituksista, jotka on säilyneet vain fragmentaarisessa muodossa, voidaan nähdä, että hän oli arkkikonservatiivinen ja halusi puhdistaa Platonin alkuperäisinä opetuksina pitämänsä potaskan aristotelismin elementtien tunkeutumiselta. Platonin tulkkina Atticus ajatteli filologisesti ja kannatti Platonin luomisopin kirjaimellista, ei metaforista tulkintaa. Atticuksen asema edustaa versiota
pl atonismista, jonka mukaan poikkeaminen mestarin kirjaimellisesta sanasta tarkoittaa korvaamatonta harhaoppista vastustusta. Hänen työnsä oli poleeminen, mahdollisesti peräisin hänen asemastaan ensimmäisenä
pl atonisen filosofian tuolin haltijana Ateenassa Marcus Aureliuksen rahoituxella. Atticus väitti, että Aristoteles oli ateisti, että hän kielsi sielun olemassaolon ja hylkäsi jumalallisen huolenpidon. Hän koitti saada muutkin uskomaan, että maailmalla oli alku demiurgin kiidettyä ensihoitoon ajoissa.
ellauri350.html on line 405: Tällä maailman ikuisuuden hylkäämisellä ja myös Demiurgin ja muototeorian ymmärryksellä sekä anti-aristotelisella asenteella Atticus edusti selvästi vastakohtaa näkemyksiin, joista myöhemmin tuli osa polhöjen kristillisten ideoiden ydintä uus
pl atonismissa myöhäisessä antiikissa. Hän vaikutti suuressa määrin myöhempiin uus
pl atonisteihin, joista useimmat kyllä kiistivät hänen päättömät ajatuksensa, sekä vaikutti moniin kristillisiin filosofeihin, jotka usein näkivät hänen sekopäisimmät ajatuksensa yhteensopivimpina heidän omiensa kanssa.
ellauri350.html on line 409: Atticuksen ensisijainen huolenaihe on selvä raja
pl atonisen ja aristotelilaisen filosofian välillä. Hän vastustaa jyrkästi yrityksiä rakentaa harmoniaa Platonin ja Aristoteleen välille ja tulkita Platonin teoksia aristoteelisten opetusten avulla. Hän piti Aristoteleen lähestymistapoja väärinä ja uskoi, että Aristoteles loi systemaattisesti filosofiansa luihuna vastavetona
pl atonismille.
ellauri350.html on line 411: Atticus pitää Demiurgia, maailman luojaa Platonin Timaiuksessa, ylimpänä jumalana. Ontologisesti hän näkee Demiurgin ylimpänä ensimmäisenä peripateetikkona; hän identifioi Demiurgin hyvän
pl atoniseen muotoon, hyvään itsessään, joka esiintyy korkeimpana jumalana Platonin tasavallassa. Näin tehdessään hän seuraa keski
pl atonismin konservatiivista suuntaa, jota myös joku Albinus (n.h.) edustaa, ja on ristiriidassa näkyvän keski
pl atonistin ja uuspythagoralaisen Numeniuksen näkemyksen kanssa. Numenius (n.h.), kuten myöhemmät uus
pl atonistit Plotinos ja Proclus (no ei näistäkään ole paljon lintuhavaintoja, mutta kz. albumia
357 ), olivat ymmärtäneet Demiurgin erillisenä kokonaisuutena, "Hyvän" apulaisena. Keski
pl atonistien yleisen näkemyksen mukaan Demiurgi luo maailman tarkastelemalla asioiden arkkityyppejä (ideoita) kuin jotain mallikuvia. Atticus jakaa tämän näkemyksen, mutta toisin kuin useimmat keski
pl atonistit, hän ei oleta ideoiden maailman olevan Demiurgin älyssä (nous). Pikemminkin hän osoittaa sille erillisen olemassaolon nousin ulkopuolella, sielun tasolla, demiurgin housuissa.
ellauri350.html on line 413: Atticuksen teologian piirre on, että se ei jaa muinaisten
pl atonistien keskuudessa muuten vallitsevaa uskomusta, jonka mukaan ylin jumaluus ei välttämättä tunne mitään muutosta sen täydellisyyden vuoksi. Atticuksen jumala harkitsee, suunnittelee, odottaa, päättää ja huolehtii henkilökohtaisesti luomistaan asioista. Tämä jumala-idea on siksi lähempänä populaariuskontoa (ja kristinuskoa) kuin
pl atonistien perinteinen teologia. Se on vastamalli Aristoteleen ja Epikuroksen opasteille, joita vastaan Atticus taisteli ja jotka väittävät, että jumalallinen kaitselmus ei käsittelisi yksittäisiä kohtaloita. Pikemminkin Kaitselmus on yksi opeista, joita Atticus painokkaammin puolustaa. No kyllä arvasin että tosi hölmö hörhö oli kyseessä, jos toi muovinaamarinen kanukki piti sitä mallina. Atticuxen demiurgijorina on aivan sekopäistä potaskaa.
ellauri350.html on line 423: Atticus puolusti painokkaasti
pl atonista oppia sielun kuolemattomuudesta Aristotelesta vastaan. Hän syyttää Aristotelesta sellaisen näkemyksen puolustamisesta sielusta, joka merkitsee sielun toiminnan kieltämistä, mutta myös sen substanssia ja luonnetta, väittäen, että just tää kuolemattomuus erottaa sielun älystä (nous); Aristoteles tekee sielusta tarpeettoman. Atticukselle maailmansielu järjestää ja läpäisee kaiken, koska vain jos yksi sielullinen voima yhdistää ja pitää kaiken yhdessä, maailmankaikkeutta voidaan hallita järkevästi ja kauniisti. Law and order ja republikanismi vallizee. Presidentti istuu oval officessa valkoisessa talossa. One ring to bind them all.
ellauri350.html on line 427: Etiikassa Atticuksen aristotelismin hylkääminen on erityisen akuuttia. Hän puolustaa
pl atonista oppia, jonka mukaan hyve yksin riittää saavuttamaan eudaimonian, aristotelilaisten näkemystä vastaan. Aristotelilainen oppi väittää, että eudaimoniaan tarvitaan myös fyysisiä ja ulkoisia hyödykkeitä. Siksi on välttämätöntä, että eudaimoniaa tavoittelevaa hyveellistä ihmistä suosivat lisäksi suotuisat ulkoiset olosuhteet, muuten eudaimonia on hänen ulottumattomissaan. Atticus vastustaa väitettä, jonka mukaan ihmisen onnellisuus riippuu myös jalosta alkuperästä, fyysisestä kauneudesta ja hyvinvoinnista, mitä hän pitää matalana ja harhaanjohtavana ajatteluna. Ilmeisssti Atticus oli ize aika hämäristä oloista eikä suinkaan mikään Adonis.
ellauri350.html on line 429: Klassisessa antiikissa Atticuksen filosofian vaikutus oli huomattava ja kestävä. Hänen opetuksensa kosmologiasta ja sielusta vaikuttivat lääkäri Galenukseen, joka kuitenkin torjui hänen näkemyksensä alkion muodostumisesta. Kyllä siihen sittenkin tarvitaan aimo limaruiskaus kuukerin nellistä. Kuuluisa peripataatti Aleksanteri Aphrodisiac käsitteli Atticuksen Aristotelesta esittämää kritiikkiä. 3. vuosisadalla
pl atonisti Longinus sai valitettavasti vaikutteita Atticuksen metafysiikasta.
ellauri350.html on line 431: Neo
pl atonisessa koulussa, jonka Plotinus perusti Roomaan 3. vuosisadalla, Atticuksen kommentit Platonista olivat osa opetussuunnitelmaa. Plotinoksen oppilas Porfyrios ja hänen oppilaansa ja vastustajansa Jamblikhos käyttivät laajasti Timaiuksen kommentteja. Myös muut uus
pl atonistit, kuten Proclus, Syrianus, Damascius ja Sim
pl icius, kommentoivat - usein kriittisesti - Atticuksen opetuksia. He eivät kuitenkaan luottaneet hänen alkuperäisiin kirjoituksiinsa, ainakaan osittain, vaan Porfyrioksen ja Iamblichuksen teoksiin. Proclus käsitteli intensiivisesti keski
pl atonismin näkemyksiä. Hän korosti - luultavasti ironisesti - Atticuksen poikkeuksellista ahkeruutta. Jäbä hääräsi kuin muurahainen tajuamatta mistään tuon taivaallista.
ellauri350.html on line 433: Hierocleella näytti olleen mielessään erityisesti Atticus, kun hän hyökkäsi niitä filosofeja vastaan, jotka kuvasivat Platonin ja Aristoteleen edustavan vastakkaisia näkemyksiä. Polemiikka Aristotelesta vastaan oli epämiellyttävää uus
pl atonisissa piireissä; jo Plotinoksen opettaja Ammonius Saccas oli 3. vuosisadalla yrittänyt näyttää harmonian Platonin ja Aristoteleen välillä. Atticuksen näkemys siitä, että ideat olivat nousin ulkopuolella, ja hänen käsityksensä demiurgista olivat vääriä myös uus
pl atonisesta näkökulmasta. Hänen oppinsa maailman kronologisesta alkuperästä ja ajasta ennen maailman alkua tuntui heistä syystä absurdilta.
ellauri350.html on line 435: Atticus sai myös paljon huomiota kristityiltä, koska hänen käsityksensä Jumalasta on suhteellisen yhteensopiva kristillisen kanssa ja hänen tulkintansa Platonin luomiskertomuksesta vastaa kristillistä luomisoppia. Kristittyjä kirjailijoita, jotka mainitsevat tai lainaavat häntä, ovat Eusebius Kesarealainen, Theodoret (n.h.) , Johannes Philoponus ja Aeneas Gazalainen. Aeneas Gazalainen menehtyi sittemin Israelin pommituxissa. Dumb and dumber. Myöhäinen antiikkiteologi Areios, jonka mukaan areiolaisuus on nimetty, osoittaa myös teologisessa ajattelussaan yhtäläisyyksiä Atticuksen ajatuksiin, mutta konkreettista näyttöä foul
pl aysta ei ole.
ellauri350.html on line 437: Nykytutkimuksessa tutkijat ovat usein huomauttaneet, että Atticuksen vastakkainasettelua aristotelismin kanssa leimaa kiero poleeminen tarkoitus ja että hän maalasi usein pinnallisen ja vääristyneen kuvan aristotelilaisesta filosofiasta. Kriitikot huomauttavat myös, että Atticus ei tehnyt oikeutta omalle huolellisuudelleen esittää Platonin autenttinen filosofia, vaan hän syyllistyi
pl atonisen ontologian "epäasianmukaiseen yksinkertaistamiseen". Toisaalta tunnustetaan myös, että hän onnistui suunnittelemaan järjestelmän, joka vastaisi johdonmukaisuuden puutteessaan suunnilleen kristittyjen tarpeita, ja että sixi se ansaitsee huomiota myös tämän päivän
pl atonismin näkökulmasta.
ellauri350.html on line 460: Tai hei, Friedmanin
pl okista löytyi paljastuxia! On keskeisiä elementtejä, jotka edistävät tervettä, onnellista ja pitkää elämää. Tässä on 7 vinkkiä menestymiseen ja optimaalisen terveyden ylläpitämiseen: Kehitä hyviä sosiaalisia siteitä terveen yhteisön kanssa. Ensimmäinen vinkki on tärkein, koska se auttaa muita. Oletko läheinen terveen perheen kanssa, vapaaehtoisen sosiaalisen ryhmän tai prososiaalisen uskonnollisen yhteisön kanssa? Onko sinulla kannattava ura tai positiivinen koulutuspyrkimys? Loistavaa.
ellauri350.html on line 564:
VIDEO
ellauri350.html on line 565:
Arons, who live in Tiburon, Marin County, and whose son, Elijah, writes for television in Los Angeles, have experimented with this format themselves, using it to deepen connections with their coupl e of remaining friends: “It’s a great way to spend an evening,” Aron said.
ellauri350.html on line 736:
Em pl us: tusti lojumme sängyllä ja luemme jotain.
ellauri350.html on line 818:
VIDEO
ellauri350.html on line 827: Optimistiset nunnat elivät 10v kauemmin kuin pessimistiset, 85-vuotiaista 95-vuotiaixi. Pessimistiset pääsivät taivaan iloihin 10v ennemmin. Nauru pidentää ikää. Onnessa on 2 osatekijää, nautinto ja tarkoituxen tunne. On siis vältettävä kipua ja tarkoituxettomuutta. Tätä on kuzuttu nimellä
pl easure-purpose-princi
pl e (ei kuitenkaan Epikuroxen taholta).
ellauri351.html on line 30:
WIIKSI VA✷ HA-✷A✷ MME 🖕
play:none">Vihapuhetta
ellauri351.html on line 49:
ploads/2018/09/Rauno_Juntumaa_Kuvaaja_Uzi_Varon-scaled.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri351.html on line 51:
ploads/2013/04/et1.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri351.html on line 87:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/3a/Faroe_stamp_430_The_First_Human_Beings.jpg" />
ellauri351.html on line 161: Battler Britton syntyi vuonna 1932 Lancasterissa ja vietti lapsuudessaan usein aikaa perheensä loma-asunnossa järvialueella. Brittonin tärkeimmät panokset on koottu kahteen kirjaan. Teoksessa Belief and Imagination (1998) hän kehittää ajatuksiaan totuudesta ja psyykkestä todellisuudesta. Hän ehdottaa, että usko on se, joka antaa todellisuuden aseman haaveille ja ideoille, joita sitten käsitellään faktoina. Hän pitää uskoa osana epistemofiilistä vaistoa, joka on välttämätön elämälle epävarmuuden edessä. Uskomukset ovat mielikuvituksia, joita pidetään psyykkinä esineinä ja jotka – emotionaalisesti panostettuina – vaativat surua, jos niistä halutaan luopua. Hän erottaa uskon tiedosta (johon se usein rinnastetaan) sillä perusteella, että uskomuksen haltija hyväksyy sen mahdollisuuden olla totta. (Täh?) Hän ehdottaa, että tieto siitä, että jollakulla on usko, joka ei ole tosiasian läsnäolo, vaatii psykologista kehitystä; nimittäin kyky yhdistää subjektiivinen kokemus ja objektiivinen itsetietoisuus niin, että ihminen voi "näkeä itsensä" uskovan. Hän ehdottaa, että tämä edellyttää kolmiomaisen psyykkisen tilan läsnäoloa, jossa on kolmas asema, josta subjektiivisen minän voidaan havaita olevan suhteessa ideaan. Tätä tarvitaan todellisuuden testaamiseen, ja se riippuu Oidipus-kom
pl eksin sisäisen version sietokyvystä.
ellauri351.html on line 178: Olen antanut mitä suurimman osoituksen tämän hienon kirjan monista rikkauksista. Minulle jäi vain yksi palapeli. Britton kertoo paljon Darwin-miehestä tässä kirjassa, mutta hyvin vähän darwinismin vaikutuksista psykoanalyysiin. Yhdessä vaiheessa hän valittaa, että Darwinin evoluutioteorian radikalismi on tuskin läpäissyt koulutettuja mielipiteitä. Luulen, että hän on väärässä tässä, mutta entä darwinilaiset psykoanalyysimallit: Bowlbyn, ennen kaikkea, mutta myös nykyaikaisempi versio kiintymysteoriasta, jonka tässä maassa julkaisivat Peter Fonagy, Anthony Bateman ja Mary Target sekä Yhdysvalloissa sellaiset henkilöt. kuin Allan Schore? Neuropsykoanalyysi on täysin darwinistinen näkökulma. Olisi hyvä saada Brittonin mielipide näistä malleista, ei vähiten siksi, että ne kiinnostavat niin monia hänen kiinnostuksen kohteitaan. Sama ajatus minulla oli neurotieteistä, Brittonin arvostaman alan suhteen. Neurotiede käyttää aivojen rakenteita tarkastellessaan täysin darwinistista viitekehystä: tyvihermot, jotka muodostavat matelijakom
pl eksin, kehittyivät ensimmäisinä; myöhemmin tuli limbinen järjestelmä, useimpien emotionaalisten reaktioiden istuin; lopulta kehittyi neokortex, josta me ihmiset saamme niin monia kognitiivisia etujamme. Nämä rakenteet, joita löytyy myös muista kuin ihmiseläimistä eri suhteissa, muodostavat nyt perustan suurelle osalle neurotieteellistä teoriaa. Eikö psykoanalyysillä ole heistä mitään sanottavaa? Exnää ole just noi se, minä ja superminä?
ellauri351.html on line 197: Suomi joutui kriisiin kun Neuvostola hajosi. Onnexi on nyt matuja ja putinisteja. Viha antaa elämälle tarkoitusta, merkityxen fiilistä. Saa olla osa jotain suurempaa. Vihollinen voi olla salarakas ja kääntäen. Ei mielikuva voi tuottaa energiaa, enintään voi vapauttaa eli kuluttaa. Mixei talousliberaali länkkäreitä mainita vihaajien joukossa, vaan niiden vastustajat? I suspect foul
pl ay. Kaikilla oli muka vain vaikeuxia minäkuvan kaa. Pahaa luikerointia! Tehdään vastapuolista jotain henkkoht traumoista kärsiviä hulluja.
ellauri351.html on line 233: Julkaisunsa jälkeisinä vuosina The Body Keeps the Score – sen kansi, jossa on Matissen maalaus – on tullut terapeuttien toimistoihin, Instagramin ruudukkoihin ja ihmisten yöpöytään. "Se yhdisti minulle niin monia pisteitä", sanoi yksi van der Kolkin kollegoista Traumatutkimussäätiössä. Verkkoarvostelijat jakoivat samanlaisia paljastuksia. "Ymmärrän sen nyt", yksi lukija julkaisi Redditissä. "En ole yksi rikkinäinen, viallinen muukalainen, joka on sijoitettu vieraaseen perheeseen vieraalla
pl aneetalla, olen lapsi, jota ei ole nähty, kuultu tai hoidettu." Erään toimittajan lisäksi van der Kolk muistelee: ”Kukaan meistä ei odottanut tätä, että se kiipeäisi ja kiipeäisi ja kiipeäisi. Olen edelleen ymmälläni."
ellauri351.html on line 243: Trauma can be trapped in the body as a reflexive wince stuck in time — manifesting as a shoulder spasm, for exam
pl e, when someone hears a word that reminds them of the traumatic event. He used to have those, he said, but not anymore. We’re at the beginning of a new scientific epoch, he told me, of understanding the truth about trauma: Finally, humanity can hope to free itself from the cycles that have dragged us through eons of war, violence, and poverty. Someday soon, he told me, finally, we will all become clean.
ellauri351.html on line 328:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/52/Peter_Singer_MIT_Veritas.jpg/396px-Peter_Singer_MIT_Veritas.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri351.html on line 329:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e9/Toby_Ord.jpg/440px-Toby_Ord.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri351.html on line 330:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6e/William_MacAskill_Portrait_2015_%28cropped%29.jpg/322px-William_MacAskill_Portrait_2015_%28cropped%29.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri351.html on line 331:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a0/Sam_Bankman-Fried.png/440px-Sam_Bankman-Fried.png" height="250px" />
ellauri351.html on line 352: Kardemommeloven: Man skal ikke
pl age andre, man skal være grej og snill,
ellauri351.html on line 425: Hei täähän on se Haim Ginottin XYZ malli Angelan niteestä?! Sen on vitun monet izehoitohyypät omineet without so much as by your leave. Paizi tässä on vielä tää motivaatio
pl äjäys perässä.
ellauri351.html on line 438: Why I Hate You and You Hate Me: The Inter
pl ay of Envy, Greed, Jealousy and Narcissism in Everyday Life, se selittää. Kateutta syyttelevät kaikesta enimmin ne, joilla on jotain kadehdittavaa. Se on selvä oikeistomeemi sixi vaan ei sixi.
ellauri351.html on line 458: The phrase is thought to have originated from the
pl ay Hamlet by William Shakespeare. In the
pl ay, “though he be mad, there is method in’t” is a line from William Shakespeare’s
pl ay Hamlet.
ellauri351.html on line 459: It is spoken by Polonius, the king’s advisor, in Act II, Scene 2. Hamlet has been behaving strangely since the death of his father, and Polonius believes that he is mad. However, Hamlet is actually pretending to be mad in order to buy himself time to carry out his revenge on his father’s killer, Claudius. Polonius is the first person to fall for Hamlet’s act. He believes that Hamlet is truly mad, and he tells Claudius about Hamlet’s strange behavior. Claudius is relieved to hear this, and he believes that Hamlet is no longer a threat. Hamlet’s
pl an works perfectly. He is able to gather evidence against Claudius, and he eventually succeeds in killing him. The idiom “method in his madness” refers to Hamlet’s clever
pl an to pretend to be mad in order to achieve his revenge.
ellauri351.html on line 465: Vihasta on hivuttauduttu vähin erin pahuuteen. Paha se onkin paha eikä niinkään viha sinänsä. Viha ei välttämättä ole pahaa eikä paha vihaista. Paha ei välttämättä ole edes sitä tahallista satuttamista, voi se olla jonkin sortin hölmöyttäkin, tottelevaisuutta, ajattelemattomuutta tai mielenvikaa. Keitto sakenee hämmennettäessä, the
pl ot thickens. Voimafirmat kilpailevat ja aiheuttaa pahaa luonnolle. Useimmiten yhden paha on toisen hyvä, ei siinä mitään pahansuopuutta tarvita. No hard feelings. Ei peto tai muu loinen vihaa isäntäeläintä, pikemminkin päinvastoin.
ellauri351.html on line 467: Mutta oikeat pahixet ovat kateita, kaunaisia ja kylmiä. Ne eivät tajua asioiden merkityxiä. Niiden symbolifunktio on heikentynyt. Silloin ihminen toteuttaa unelmansa. When you kill another human being, there is a cost. You pay a steep price. But anyway, it's just a price. Everything has a price. Nothing to it, just cough up the money and you are fine. You'll be alright Bones. Meet Jasper the
pl astic pig. Tapa tapa tapa tapa ... dadaa.
ellauri351.html on line 498: Emme ole välittäneet luonnon tilan huonosta jamasta kertoneista varoituksista. Emme ole piitanneet sodan seurauksista varoittaneiden pasifistien sanoista. Emme ole olleet kiinnostuneita
pl aneetan eliöiden kesken vallitsevasta eriarvoisuudesta tai suoranaisesta nälänhädästä, vaan olemme ehdoin tahdoin luoneet taloudellisia instituutioita, jotka lisäävät eliöiden tuloeroja ja heikentävät niiden kykyä pärjätä meidän
pl aneetallamme.
ellauri351.html on line 508: Päästäksemme uuden tielle, meidän on kuitenkin ensin ymmärrettävä, että koska ihmiskunta on yhtä skeidaa, kaikki on yhteistä kuin uskovaisten eväät. Koko
pl aneetta on olemassa jok’ikisen eliön oikeutena ja siksi aivan kaikkien on saatava tasaveroisesti nauttia
pl aneetan tuotoksista. Ihmiskunnan on opittava jakamisen periaate, jolla ratkaisemme nälänhädän, terrorismin, vihamielisyyden ja lopulta kaikki ongelmamme. Jok’ikinen eliö on pyhä olento, joka on osa kaikkeutta.
ellauri351.html on line 535:
ploads/2022/09/Laughing-Maitreya.webp" height="300px" />
ellauri351.html on line 589: Sen vaimo Pauliina Remes (1971-) on tuhnu
pl atonismia peukuttava filosofian professori Uppsalan yliopistossa. Perhe asuu Helsingissä Puu-Koskelassa.
ellauri351.html on line 604:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/BenjaminCremeNYClecture2008.jpg/120px-BenjaminCremeNYClecture2008.jpg?20090802182412" height="300px" />
ellauri351.html on line 653: The Sigourney Award ( two nickels) was given to him because he was due to his being a seminal contributor "to the ap
pl ication of psychoanalytic thinking to conflicts between countries and cultures".
ellauri351.html on line 656: Hän kehitti epävirallisen di
pl omatian "uurnamallin", kuvasi "linkkiviä esineitä" ja "linkkiilmiöitä" monivuotisista suureista, havainnoi yhteiskuntien "valittuja traumoja" ja "valittuja loistoja" ja teoretisoi "infantiilin psykoottisen minän" kehitystä ihmisissä, joiden henkiset toiminnot toimivat jäävät Vamikiin verrattuna kehittymättömiksi.
ellauri351.html on line 678: Bones ja Bone of Contention oli taas sietämättömän amerikkalaisia. Bonesissa arvosteltiin di
pl omaattista koskemattomuutta, onhan ulkomaisillekin konnille (Assange) toki turvallisempaa istua laskemassa amerikkalaisia tiilenpäitä kuin omia. Parhaassa tapauxessa saada vielä myrkkypiikistä. Vasemmistolaisen ulkoministeriön kääpiötä pilkattiin räväkästi kuin Pultti Boisissa saamelaisia ja tummia. Bone of Contentionissa kiinalaisten kanojen ylikansoituxesta (käsin laskemalla yli 5 miljardia) syystä huolestunut terroristi ei ole vain nartun poikanen vaan cowardi, siis izekin chicken eli kana! 100 tyyppiä tosin croakkasi mutta Philadelphia selvisi Marburg-epidemiasta entistä ehompana. Sitäpaizi päästiin eroon ensin pullanaama Peter Dunlopin vääränrotuisesta latinoperskärpäsestä ja sitten ize pullanaamasta.
ellauri351.html on line 683:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d8/Eric_Hobsbawm.jpg/440px-Eric_Hobsbawm.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri351.html on line 700: Hobsbawmin sanotaan sanoneen, että seksin lisäksi ei ole mitään niin fyysisesti intensiivistä kuin "osallistuminen joukkomielenosoitukseen suuren julkisen korotuksen aikana". Aika intensiivinen hörökorva olikin. Hänen ensimmäinen avioliittonsa oli Muriel Seamanin kanssa vuonna 1943. He erosivat vuonna 1951. Hänen toinen avioliittonsa oli Marlene Schwarzin (vuonna 1962), jonka kanssa hänellä oli kaksi lasta, Julia Hobsbawm ja Andy Hobsbawm. Hänellä oli väh. 1 avioton poika Joshua Bennathan, joka syntyi vuonna 1958 ja kuoli marraskuussa 2014. "Joss" kuoli syöpään viisikymppisenä. Born in Birmingham, Joss was the son of the historian Eric Hobsbawm and the educational psychologist Marion Bennathan. He was raised by his mother and her husband, the economist Esra Bennathan, and went to Newnham Croft primary school, Cambridge, and Bristol grammar school. At the age of 17, Joss married Jenny Corrick and had two children by the age of 20. The cou
pl e divorced but remained friends.
ellauri351.html on line 711:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/3/3f/Woody_Woodpecker.png" height="300px" />
ellauri351.html on line 715: Gustave Le Bon propose dans cet ouvrage que, lorsque des individus sont réunis, ils ne raisonnent pas de la même manière que s'ils étaient seuls, ex
pl iquant ainsi les comportements irraisonnés des foules.
ellauri351.html on line 730: Jöns oli lukenut pyhästä Yrjänästä, mullakin saattaa olla siitä jotain paasausta. Yrjänä oli paavin tai keisarin henkivartija, mutta otti lopputilin ja lähti Tel Aviviin asumaan yxiössä. Jossain Mahgrebissa sen sanotaan pelastaneen damselin distressistä seivästämällä jonkun matelijanaivon ahraimella (se oli sen mieliase, koska se oli poikasena pyydystellyt kaloja rantavesistä jossain Jordanian rajalla). Näin siis Jöns. Ykä on Gruusian ja Englannin suojeluspyhimys ja Venäjän korkein sotilasprenikka. Ristiretken aikana joku väitti nähneensä pyhän Yrjänän muurin harjalla. Kohta kaiki muutkin muistivat että siellähän se kuppelehti. Tällänen generatiivinen muisti on myös Seija-paralla. Se muistaa aivan selvästi tapahtumattomia seikkoja. Ize muistan liian vähän, muisti on lähinnä Rantan
pl an-tasoa, mutta Seija korjaa vahingon.
ellauri351.html on line 732:
plain/assets/catawiki/assets/2020/10/22/3/c/9/3c937a88-3230-497e-8c80-b68c716168ba.jpg" />
ellauri351.html on line 736:
VIDEO
ellauri352.html on line 33:
Die Geschichte vom hölzernen Bengeleplay:none">Emävaleita
ellauri352.html on line 76: Mutta onnex onnex filosofi Pirmin Stekeler-Weithofer hylkää yhteiskuntateoreettisen tulkinnan taistelulle tunnustuksen puolesta. Sen sijaan hän olettaa, että Hegelin isäntä-orja -luvun todellinen teema on ihmisen itsensä suhde itseensä; hän lukee sen Hegelin kritiikkinä sokraattis-
pl atonis-kristilliselle metaforalle sielusta tai järjestä ruumiin hallitsijana. Vittu Pirmin Stekeler on kuin nippu näitä psykopaattikyrpiä.
ellauri352.html on line 81: Hegelin isäntä-orja-luvun Stekeler-Weiterhofer ymmärtää kritiikkinä sokratis-
pl atonista vertauskuvaa kohtaan sielusta ruumiin hallitsijana. Stekeler-Weithofer näyttää henkilökohtaisen itseluottamuksen kehittymisen itsekasvatuksena ja itsehillinnäna sen sijaan, että se keskittyisi vain yhteiskuntateoreettiseen arkkityyppiin, ihmisten väliseen tunnustamistapaukseen. Platonin tulkinnassa hän erottaa psykḗen maineen ja kunnian kantajana, joka kestää myös kuolemamme jälkeen, ja aktiivisen aretḗ- ihmisen (hyve), jossa toimimme tunnollisesti ja itsetuomisesti, riippumatta muiden kehuista tai moituksista. Huolehditaan siitä, että sielua ei ymmärretä onttisesti 'sieluksi' kutsutun henkisen olennon todellisena olemassaolona. Sielu on vaan meemi, tyypin kuolematon maine meedioissa ja pilvipalveluissa. Stekeler vakuttaa (kuorossa Hegelin ja muiden sax. idealismikellarin juuresten kanssa) tiedon subjektin absoluuttisuudesta. En voi epäillä ajatusteni ja tekoni toteutumista. Ja mixi en, bitte sehr? Die Geschichte vom hölzernen Bengele, by: Joseph Mengele. Ei tässä ole päätä eikä häntää Pirmin hyvä, puhdasta potaskaa.
ellauri352.html on line 174: Ranen tuntemat perustunteet ovat hämmästys, ilo, inho, mielihyvä, pelko, suru, viha (7 k
pl ). Sosiaalisia ovat halvexunta, hämmennys, häpeä, ihailu, kateus, kiitollisuus, mustasukkaisuus, suuttumus, sympatia, syyllisyys ja ylpeys (11 k
pl ). Nämä ovat edellisten alalajeja ja/tai sekotuxia. Rakkaus yllättäen puuttuu listasta. Edes himoa ei mainita. Onxtää joku alle 18v luettelo?
ellauri352.html on line 218: Yhdysvalloissa 11% istuu myttyinä kadulla köyhyysrajan alapuolella. Maailmanpankin ja brittilafkan "Our [hehe] World In Data" tilastoissa Suomessa on köyhiä 12% ja UK:ssa 18%, mutta USA on N/A. Not available vaiko not ap
pl icable? Raja on määritelty US $2/päivä ostovoimaxi. Sillä ei saa päivittäistä bursaa edes Turkissa. Varoitellaan ettei maiden köyhyyttä voi verrata.
ellauri352.html on line 223: Internetin ja sosiaalisen median aikakausi auttaa vahvasti sen sekaannusten lujittumista, että oma tunne ja Ranen kuvitelmat tuntuvat tiedolta. Hakukoneet ja sosiaalisen median palvelimet, puhumattakaan valtamedian klikkiuutisista, tuottavat ize kunkin mieltymyxiä vastaavaa aineistoa, ku
pl amuovia. Tässä kohen Rane alkaa kuulostaa salaliittoteoreetikolta. Hyvä Rane! Right on! Suvi-Anne Siimeskin heitti kommunismin tienoheen ja turvautuu nyt ortodoxiaan. Se tuntuu ihoon sopivimmalta. Juu nyt alkaa Ranen salajuoni näyttää selvältä: pysytelkää vaan kiltisti ku
pl issanne, älkää ainakaan alkako räyhätä joukolla jollain barrikaadeilla. Se on parasta. Joukossa tyhmyys vaan tiivistyy, kuten nähtiin Kajanojasta. Lopuxi siteerataan vähän Karl Popperia.
ellauri352.html on line 261:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/79/K%C3%BCbler_Ross%27s_stages_of_grief.svg/800px-K%C3%BCbler_Ross%27s_stages_of_grief.svg.png" />
ellauri352.html on line 270:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/92/K%C3%BCbler_Ross_grieving_curve_%28edited%29.svg/440px-K%C3%BCbler_Ross_grieving_curve_%28edited%29.svg.png" />
ellauri352.html on line 307:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/23/%C3%89mile_Durkheim.jpg/520px-%C3%89mile_Durkheim.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri352.html on line 371:
ploads/2023/08/Thales-of-Miletus-e1692813766199-800x400.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri352.html on line 374: Ron Jones (s. 1941) on amerikkalainen kirjailija ja entinen opettaja Palo Altossa, Kaliforniassa. Hänet tunnetaan parhaiten luokkaharjoitteestaan nimeltä "The Third Wave" ja tapahtumasta kirjoittamansa kirjasta, joka inspiroi tv-elokuvaa The Wavea ja muita teoksia, mukaan lukien teatterielokuva vuonna 2008 ja saxalainen Netflix sarja 2019. Alkuperäinen tv-elokuva voitti Emmy- ja Peabody- palkinnot. Hänen kirjoistaan The Acorn Peo
pl e ja B-Ball on tehty myös tv-draamoja. Jones asuu San Franciscossa, Kaliforniassa, missä hän esiintyy säännöllisesti tarinankertojana. SF on kyllä tarinoiden tarpeessa. Tao Tao olisi enemmän kuin paikallaan.
ellauri352.html on line 408: John Bowlby koki kovasti, kuinka voimakas tarve ihmisellä on tulla kuulluxi ja nähdyxi, kansallisilla kanavilla ja mielellään muös kansainvälisessä meediassa. Se koskee myös kansanryhmiä. Seremoniat ja rituaalit palvelevat tätä tarkoitusta, ne ovat hyvää surutyötä. Lisää siis niitä
pl iis!
ellauri352.html on line 455:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/20/Erwin_Ding_NS-Arzt_Buchenwald.JPG/440px-Erwin_Ding_NS-Arzt_Buchenwald.JPG" height="250px" />
ellauri352.html on line 456:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/00/Eugen_Kogon%2C_an_der_Christian-Albrechts-Universit%C3%A4t%2C_Kiel_1970.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri352.html on line 604: In 2011, a "novel of the decade" was chosen due to lack of sponsorship to hold the customary award. Five finalists were chosen from sixty nominees selected from the prize´s past winners and finalists since 2001.[citation needed] Chudakov won posthumously with A Gloom Is Cast Upon the Ancient Steps, which takes
pl ace in a fictional town in Kazakhstan and describes fictional life under Stalinist Russia. The criteria for inclusion included literary effort, representativeness of the contemporary literary genres and the author¨s reputation as a writer. Length was not a criterion, as books with between 40 and 60 pages had been nominated.
ellauri352.html on line 611: The novel has been compared with Edgar Lee Masters´s poetry collection Spoon River Anthology, published in 1915. Tim Martin, writing for Literary Review, compared its "babble of American voices", some from primary sources and some expertly fabricated, with the last act of Thornton Wilder´s
pl ay Our Town. Kaskun ei Divina Comediaan.
ellauri352.html on line 627:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/90/Chakras_and_energy_channels_2_%283749594497%29.jpg/400px-Chakras_and_energy_channels_2_%283749594497%29.jpg" />
ellauri352.html on line 628:
The walls of the Dalai Lama´s summer templ e of Lukhang depict trul khor asanas. Näitä näpeimpiä kohtia Abe hypisteli kyrptassa. Bardo on smegma-buddalaisuuden limbo.
ellauri352.html on line 700: Yksinkertainen mutta epäjohdonmukainen Michenerin perhekolmio -lähestymistapa tarjoaa tä
pl än, hämmentävän yleiskatsauksen monimutkaiseen historiaan; samalla kun hän korostaa Puolan johtajuuden puutteita, hän idealisoi ja hämärtää muualla – esimerkiksi lähes täydellisellä puolalaisen antisemitismin kalkinpoistolla. Ja huolimatta muutamista seurusteluista ja häistä, hahmojen paraati täällä on tasaista, täysin huumorintajutonta, ei-osallistuvaa. Etsi sitten muualta joko vahvaa historiallista fiktiota tai johdonmukaista johdatusta Puolan historiaan. Mutta katso siitä huolimatta bestseller-luetteloita: tosiasiat ovat kasaantuneet, otsikko on otsikoissa, sivurivi on väistämätön.
ellauri353.html on line 31:
ploaded/mayha.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri353.html on line 33:
MÄYHÄ play:none">Hätävaleita
ellauri353.html on line 38:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/bc/MarkoTapio.jpg" />
ellauri353.html on line 60:
ploads/2016/04/Tuulikki-Valkonen.jpg" />
ellauri353.html on line 96: Marko on kuin Tre
pl ev Tshehovin Lokissa. Tre
pl ev pitäisi tappaa eikä Nina. Ja niinhän siinä käykin loppupeleissä. Opastyttö oli lentoemo. Lokki kivellä.
ellauri353.html on line 134: Jos miehen tahto on kyllin suuri hän pystyy ramppaamaan jalkoihinsa uskomattomia vaikeuxia vain käytöxellään. Kuin filmikoomikko Cha
pl in hassulla kävelyllä. Sinä voit aina luottaa Isä Vihtoriin ja minuun kuin kallioon. Luotathan?
ellauri353.html on line 166:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/89/LuisBu%C3%B1uel1929.jpg/500px-LuisBu%C3%B1uel1929.jpg" height="300px%" />
ellauri353.html on line 208: seksuaalipatologia: 3k
pl
ellauri353.html on line 210: rehottavan machismon tuhoisat vaikutukset: 2k
pl
ellauri353.html on line 212: fantasian ja todellisuuden hämärtyminen: 2k
pl
ellauri353.html on line 214: naisten häirizevä asema miesvaltaisessa kulttuurissa: 4k
pl
ellauri353.html on line 216: uskonnollisen elämän absurdisuus: 2k
pl
ellauri353.html on line 243: Jossain haastattelupätkässä Luis vielä kertoo unelmista, kohtaamisista monien tunnettujen kirjailijoiden, näyttelijöiden ja taiteilijoiden, kuten Pablo Picasson ja Charlie Cha
pl inin, kanssa sekä hauskista temppuiluista, kuten nunnaksi pukeutumisesta ja kaupungilla kävelystä.
ellauri353.html on line 258:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/7d/Tom_Skinner_-_Rose_Friedman_Headshot.jpg" />
ellauri353.html on line 268: Hän oli naimisissa usein työtoverinsa Milton Friedmanin (1912–2006) kanssa, joka voitti vuoden 1976 taloustieteen Nobelin. Hänen veljensä, Aaron Director (1901–2004), oli professori Chicagon yliopiston lakikoulussa ja yksi oikeustieteen taloudellisen analyysin perustajista. Kz. myös
ple-memoirs">ulkokultainen video "2 onnekasta ihmistä" .
ellauri353.html on line 270: Miltonin kanssa hän kirjoitti kaksi taloustieteitä ja julkista politiikkaa käsittelevää tympäisevää kirjaa, Free to Choose ja Tyranny of the Status Quo, sekä heidän muistelmansa Two Lucky Peo
pl e, jotka ilmestyivät vuonna 1998.
ellauri353.html on line 275: Now scholar. Rose Friedman discussed their life's work in economics written about it to lucky peo
pl e. Memoirs.
ellauri353.html on line 277: The Friedmans were recent guests at the Commonwealth Club of Kalak it in Los Angeles. Each author speaks and then takes questions from the audience. Good afternoon and welcome to today's meeting of the common a Club of California. Brought to you from the St Francis Hotel relooking Union Square. I am doing an orderly chair. We also welcome the listener. A.W. F.M. in Sitka Alaska. One of more than two hundred twenty five stations across the country. Joining us for America's longest running. Radio program. We invite all our listeners here and on radio. To visit the club's website. At W.W.W. Commonwealth Club. Dot org. And now for today's speakers. It is with great
pl easure that I introduce those
pl ucky Jews, the Friedmans. The Friedmans are with us today. Connection with their recently published memoirs. Bucky peo
pl e. Published by the University of Chicago. Press this year. They have been partners in love. And in life. For over sixty years.
ellauri353.html on line 279: Milton Friedman is widely regarded as the leader of the Chicago school. Of monetary economics. Stresses the importance of the quantity of money. As an instrument of government policy. Terminated. A business cycles and inflation. After graduating in one nine hundred thirty two with a Bachelor of Arts from Rutgers. He received graduate degree. From the University of Chicago. And Columbia University. Since one thousand nine hundred seventy seven. Professor print. Has been a senior research fellow at the Hoover Institution. Homeless or University Professor Friedman received the one nine hundred seventy six Nobel Prize for ECT. That's. In addition to his scientific work. Professor Friedman has written extensively on public policy. Always with primary emphasis on the preservation and extension of. Individual freedoms. In his most important works in this area. Perhaps an ever. The important area. Is life. He has collaborated by. Roads. An accom
pl ished. Economist in her own right. Together they wrote. Capitalism and Freedom. Free to choose. And tyranny of the status quo. Free to choose and tyranny of the status quo later rip it into a T.V. series of the same names that were shown over the public. Public Broadcast stations.
ellauri353.html on line 281: Mrs. FRIEDMAN attended Reed College and studied economics at the University of Chicago. She was on the staff of the National Research and the bureau. A few. Home Economics. She next joined the staff of the Federal Deposit Insurance Corporation where she worked until she married Milton and moved to New York. Since then she has continued home economic research on her own publishing. Individually and coauthoring the three works referred to a few moments ago. She was mostly a producer of the P.B.S. T.V. series free to choose. And in one thousand nine hundred six she received an honorary doctorate from Pepperdine University. The Milton. And Rose de Friedman Foundation which the Freedman's us. Promotes parental choice. Of the schools. Attend. As I mentioned the title of their most recent book is Two lucky peo
pl e. I'm being told by my parents. That the harder you work the luckier you get. It is no wonder the Friedan consider themselves lucky. They have worked long hard to make the contributions they have made to each other and to our society. We the members and listen. Well are the lucky ones today. To have them share themselves and their insights with us once again. We welcome. (Milton claps his hands to them.)
ellauri353.html on line 289: I grew up before the appearance of the street. I even finished my graduate work. For a doctorate in economics before the feminist movement. Really got going. As a result. I was free to choose. Just how I wanted to live my life whether I wanted a full time career in the market
pl ace or a part time. Career. Combined with being a homemaker and bringing up a family. I knew I was going to get married. I'd already chosen my husband. I also wanted to have a family. Even after getting used to being married. And I wanted to bring up my children. Myself. I did not want them to be brought up. Either in a child care center. Or by a maid. Naturally by like most peo
pl e I also wanted to have my cake and even when they left. University Milton and I both went to work in Washington for jobs where economists were there only let it cool. However before we were married. His career took him to New York City. While mine remained in Washington where I live where I like to work and the peo
pl e I was working with. However we did not look forward to living apart.
ellauri353.html on line 293: I don't remember just what it was that Milton was doing. But I'll never forget my nephew's pronouncement that. Whatever it was. It was women's work. And somehow it was beneath the man's dignity to do it now and sat him down and gave him a lecture about the working man's work. But I don't think he ever forgot that lecture. Summarized the way we had led we've lived got a life. Ever since during the first year of our married life I guess I could have qualified as a feminist. I had a career in the market
pl ace. My husband did part of the house. A year later I have never received an offer of a one year appointment at the University of Wisconsin. I got a New York but it was not exciting. I hadn't finished it. And yet it never occurred to me. Or to him that I would stay on and finish my job and we would commute.
ellauri353.html on line 295: So I gave up my job and we moved when we got to this crime scene. I didn't inquire whether the university had a nepotism rule. As the University of Chicago did or we went. Later if the husband worked for the university his wife. Could not be em
pl oyed there even as a janitor. This change however with women's lives. Today. If the university wishes to hire a qualified male. It has to find a job for his wife. At the best of my knowledge that's not work in reverse.
ellauri353.html on line 297: And I really have mixed feelings about either arrangement. so instead. I have is very happy to spend the school year doing some work on my dissertation. I got used to being a homemaker. I took some funky classes in pottery, (Sorry Milton I mean) ceramics. And I got pregnant at the the back end of school here we left university and headed for Amman or Milton spent the summer writing a book. Jointly with two other peo
pl e. And I spent the summer being pregnant and I'm comfortable. But war was heating up and decided that once our baby arrived we would move. The washing. He would go to work probably at the Treasury Department. I hope to spend my time as a mother. Unfortunately that didn't work out. Our first pregnancy. My first experience at. Guarding a family came to a sad end when the baby was stillborn. So I went to work in watching them till I could get pregnant again. This time they were more fortunate. And once our daughter was born. I had no thought of going back to work. At least until my. Our children were grown. And as it turned out I never did go back as far as spam innocents are concerned. When I had the opportunity to do some work at home without leaving. So there.
ellauri353.html on line 299: But there weren't too many. I must confess that my experience combining life is a homemaker and an economist's was easier than it is for many women. I chose the right husband from the beginning. From the beginning we shared our interest in economics whether the news may call in the speech an article or a book. I was part of the activity in the sense that Milton always wanted me to read whatever he wrote. And he took my suggestion seriously. It gave me the feeling that I was practicing what I was trained for. But also that I was contributing to his career. It was in a sense our career. So when he was awarded the Nobel Prize it's received other many many many other net honors. And peo
pl e always feel sorry for me and ask me how it feels to have him getting all the honors. My answer is always the same one. It is our honor I was part of that. When our children left for good. I became more active. With us and we go off for books. Where do I come out on a women's lib or feminist women have a real problem. But in my opinion the present solution is worse than the disease. The man. Or children. And those women who still believe that a mother's first job is to bring up her children. Women's lives. Made those women. Feel that is inferior to a paying job in the market. Therefore they must be and feared with the will to have a full time job outside. It is heightened competition between man and women. Husband and wife. So-called woman is problem. Has not. And I don't believe will solve the problem. Or a woman. There is a problem.
ellauri353.html on line 305: Shut up Rose, I thought I would use my few remaining 50 minutes here. You forward publishing peo
pl e would ask me what's it going to be like. And I said well it's a book which is starting out as a love story. And which will end up as a treatise on social and that's largely what happened though it's throughout from beginning to end it really is a love story because Rose and I have really lived a love story we first met. Just exist. Just sixty sixty six years ago. In September. Nineteen thirty two. And from that time to this we have been close. And I trust shall continue to be said though she gives me no guarantees for the future. To talk about one area of social policy. Which we have engaged for many years. And recently made a major move. And that area is schooling elementary and - this is the main thing!
educational vouchers . Parental choice of schools. Not to put a too fine point to it, better folks should have freedom to put their kids in better schools. Hooray democracy, fuck equality, like Alexis Tocqueville said, etc. etc. ad nauseam.
ellauri353.html on line 322:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fe/5marshals_01.jpg/500px-5marshals_01.jpg" />
ellauri353.html on line 374:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/de/Yaponchik_mishka.jpg" />
ellauri353.html on line 380: Huomioiden näytelmän im
pl isiittisen sosialistisen realismin torjumisen, Maksim Gorki syytti ystäväänsä "baudelairelaisesta taipumuksesta mätänevään lihaan". Gorki varoitti ystäväänsä edelleen, että "poliittisia päätelmiä" tehdään "jotka ovat henkilökohtaisesti haitallisia sinulle".
ellauri353.html on line 391:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/ba/Babel_NKWD.png" width="50%" />
ellauri353.html on line 398:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/18/Sholom_Aleichem_listens.jpg" />
ellauri353.html on line 405:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/53/Ilya_Ehrenburg_Russian_writer.jpg/340px-Ilya_Ehrenburg_Russian_writer.jpg" />
ellauri353.html on line 414:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/8a/Semyon_Budenny_1930%27s_portrait.jpg" />
ellauri353.html on line 421: Lapsuudesta lähtien hän hallitsi erinomaisesti hevosta ja teräviä aseita; vuonna 1900, kun sotaministeri A. N. Kuropatkin vieraili Platovskajan kylässä, hän sai hopearu
pl an palkinnoksi erinomaisesta ratsastuksestaan.
ellauri353.html on line 452:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/92/%D0%9C%D0%B0%D1%80%D1%88%D0%B0%D0%BB_%D0%A1%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B5%D1%82%D1%81%D0%BA%D0%BE%D0%B3%D0%BE_%D0%A1%D0%BE%D1%8E%D0%B7%D0%B0_%D0%A1%D0%B5%D0%BC%D1%91%D0%BD_%D0%9C%D0%B8%D1%85%D0%B0%D0%B9%D0%BB%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B8%D1%87_%D0%91%D1%83%D0%B4%D1%91%D0%BD%D0%BD%D1%8B%D0%B9_%D1%81_%D1%81%D1%8B%D0%BD%D0%BE%D0%BC_%D0%A1%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%B3%D0%B5%D0%B5%D0%BC.jpg/400px-%D0%9C%D0%B0%D1%80%D1%88%D0%B0%D0%BB_%D0%A1%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B5%D1%82%D1%81%D0%BA%D0%BE%D0%B3%D0%BE_%D0%A1%D0%BE%D1%8E%D0%B7%D0%B0_%D0%A1%D0%B5%D0%BC%D1%91%D0%BD_%D0%9C%D0%B8%D1%85%D0%B0%D0%B9%D0%BB%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B8%D1%87_%D0%91%D1%83%D0%B4%D1%91%D0%BD%D0%BD%D1%8B%D0%B9_%D1%81_%D1%81%D1%8B%D0%BD%D0%BE%D0%BC_%D0%A1%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%B3%D0%B5%D0%B5%D0%BC.jpg" />
ellauri353.html on line 470:
ploads/2022/05/628fc9a756632-scaled.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri353.html on line 471:
Aha, en pl ugghäst! Med brillor på näsan!
ellauri353.html on line 475: Aha, en
pl ugghäst! Med brillor på näsan! En sån liten lus! Brillor brukar man få smörj för här.
ellauri353.html on line 484: Bohdan (Zynovii-Bohdan) Hmelnytskin vaakuna Abdank (27. joulukuuta 1595 (6. tammikuuta 1596) - 27. heinäkuuta (6. elokuuta 1657) – poliitikko, komentaja ja di
pl omaatti, kansallisen vapautussodan johtaja 1648-1657, Ukrainan kasakkavaltion luoja, Zaporozshin armeijan hetmani.
ellauri353.html on line 488:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Hondius_Bohdan_Khmelnytsky.jpg/548px-Hondius_Bohdan_Khmelnytsky.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri353.html on line 492: Hmelnytskyin suunnitelman mukaan tavoitteena oli Puolan ja Liettuan liittovaltion valtion täydellinen likvidaatio ("koko kruunu tuhottaisiin, ikään kuin Puolan kruunu ei olisi koskaan ollut olemassa") ja itsenäisen Venäjän valtion (no, Venäjän suuriruhtinaskunta) luominen koko Ukrainan ja Valko- Venäjän etnografiselle alueelle Hetmanin ja Zaporozshin armeijan vallan alla. Tämä hämmensi suuresti Moskovan hallitusta, joka teki kaikkensa estääkseen tämän liittouman menestyksen. Moskova aloitti sodan Ruotsin kanssa solmittuaan rauhan Puolan ja Liettuan liittovaltion kanssa. Samaan aikaan Puolan ja Liettuan liittovaltion alueella riehui sota, joka jäi historiaan nimellä "Tulva". Sotilaalliset epäonnistumiset ja epäonnistuminen di
pl omaattisten suunnitelmien toteuttamisessa joudutti hänen kuolemaansa. Khmel sai paskahalvauxen.
ellauri353.html on line 518: Cedric Fauntleroy lepää Pine Ridge Presbyterian Churchin hautausmaalla Mississippissä, Yhdysvalloissa. Sori Babel, ei se ollut Reginald vaan Cedric Errol. Också Sniff älskar saker. Han älskar sin slitna
pl ysch-hund Cedric med topasögonen.
ellauri353.html on line 588:
ploads/2023/11/red-monk-tour.webp" />
ellauri355.html on line 33:
Ostankinon juna play:none">Puolitotuuxia
ellauri355.html on line 34:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/2c/White_House-3.JPG" width="100%" />
ellauri355.html on line 38:
VIDEO
ellauri355.html on line 82: Di
pl omatic support came from Afghanistan, China, Cuba, Iraq, Laos, Libya, North Korea, Palestine Liberation Organization, Vietnam, Socialist Republic of Serbia, and Socialist Republic of Montenegro.
ellauri355.html on line 86: The GKChP hardliners dispatched KGB agents, who detained Gorbachev at his holiday estate but failed to detain the recently elected president of a newly reconstituted Russia, Boris Yeltsin, who had been both an ally and critic of Gorbachev. The GKChP was poorly organized and met with effective resistance by both Yeltsin and a civilian campaign of anti-authoritarian protesters, mainly in Moscow. The coup collapsed in two days, and Gorbachev returned to office while the
pl otters all lost their posts. Yeltsin subsequently became the dominant leader and Gorbachev lost much of his influence. The failed coup led to both the immediate collapse of the Communist Party of the Soviet Union (CPSU) and the dissolution of the USSR four months later.
ellauri355.html on line 88: On 24 August 1991, Mikhail Gorbachev created the so-called "Committee for the Operational Management of the Soviet Economy" (Комитет по оперативному управлению народным хозяйством СССР), to re
pl ace the USSR Cabinet of Ministers headed by Valentin Pavlov, a GKChP member. Russian Prime Minister Ivan Silayev headed the committee. Gorbachev's decree on re
pl acing the Cabinet of Ministers was illegal under Soviet law as it required approval from the Supreme Soviet of the USSR, but no approval by the Supreme Soviet was ever given.
ellauri355.html on line 94:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4f/%D0%94%D0%BC%D0%B8%D1%82%D1%80%D0%B8%D0%B9_%D0%AF%D0%B7%D0%BE%D0%B2_%D0%B2_1941_%D0%B3%D0%BE%D0%B4%D1%83.jpg/360px-%D0%94%D0%BC%D0%B8%D1%82%D1%80%D0%B8%D0%B9_%D0%AF%D0%B7%D0%BE%D0%B2_%D0%B2_1941_%D0%B3%D0%BE%D0%B4%D1%83.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri355.html on line 158: 1900-luvun alkuun mennessä Rossija-tehtaalla valmistettiin naisten, miesten, maantie-, rahti-, lasten- ja tandempolkupyöriä. Koko valikoimassa oli yli 20 mallia. Hintapolitiikka oli demokraattista, joten halvin polkupyörä maksoi 130 ru
pl aa, monipaikkaisten "entitled" mallien arvo oli noin 450 ru
pl aa. Leitner itse innovoi takanavan suunnittelussa ja patentoi keksinnön, joka osoittautui erittäin onnistuneeksi ja tarjosi kotimaisille polkupyörille korkeat kilpailuedut maailmanmarkkinoilla.
ellauri355.html on line 160: Tsaari-Venäjän sotilasosasto kiinnitti huomiota innovaatioihin, ja tehdas sai vuonna 1913 tilauksen 1000 miesten polkupyörän valmistukseen. Tällaiset tilaukset nostivat yrityksen luokituksen korkeimmalle tasolle, mikä vaikutti positiivisesti tehtaan muiden tilausten määrään. Yrityksen vuotuinen liikevaihto oli 400 tuhatta ru
pl aa, ja tuotanto osoitti 8 tuhatta yksikköä vuodessa.
ellauri355.html on line 184: Yritys kasvoi, uusia työpajoja ilmestyi, henkilökunta kasvoi. Tuotannon kehittämisestä vuonna 1948 yritykselle myönnettiin kolme miljoonaa ru
pl aa. Osa rahoista käytettiin työntekijöiden asumiseen. Yritys työskenteli kolmessa vuorossa. Vuonna 1949 B-31-urheilupyörän malli kehitettiin yhdellä nopeudella, ja se päivitettiin myöhemmin kahdelle nopeukselle.
ellauri355.html on line 219: Kharkovin polkupyörätehdas on kuuluisa tuotteidensa laadusta. Venäjän hinnat tässä vaiheessa muodostuvat yksityisten myyjien toimesta. He voivat ostaa pyörän hintaan 10 tuhatta - 45 tuhatta ru
pl aa. Yritys etsii edelleen mahdollisuutta laajentaa verkostoa ja avata merkkimyymälöitä Venäjän federaation alueella.
ellauri355.html on line 230:
VIDEO
ellauri355.html on line 232:
VIDEO
ellauri355.html on line 244: Hinta oli kova. 2A6-mallisista Leopardeista on julkisten tietojen mukaan tuhoutunut, vaurioitunut tai hylätty taistelukentälle ainakin 18 vaunua. 10 miljoonan k
pl hinnalla siitä tulee parisataa milliä rauta- ja keramiikkaromua.
ellauri359.html on line 33:
Kirpun henki play:none">Ilmaisrakkautta
ellauri359.html on line 34:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/74/William_Blake_002.jpg/800px-William_Blake_002.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri359.html on line 39:
VIDEO
ellauri359.html on line 61: Actually, I already knew that; what I didn’t know was that the cause was very possibly inherited syphilis. Grahame, a dyed-in-the-wool bachelor who loved “messing about in boats”, seems to have married under duress, the sort to which upper-middle-classes were particularly susceptible: namely, propriety. His sister believed Elspeth Thomson deliberately compromised him. On receiving news of his nuptials, she asked if he really intended to marry her. “I suppose so; I suppose so,” was the telling re
pl y.
ellauri359.html on line 67: For a female reader from the proletarian classes, many of Gauger’s revelations have been particularly painful. Apparently, Grahame did not like women. He did not give any of his furry heroes wives, saying that he wished his book to be “clean of the clash of sex”. The few who do appear – foremost among them the fabulously feisty washerwoman – are ridiculed, in her case mocked as vulgar, ugly and stupid. Nor did Grahame like fat peo
pl e; the washerwoman thus combines two pet hates.
ellauri359.html on line 90:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f2/Carpenter_et_Merrill.jpg/440px-Carpenter_et_Merrill.jpg" />
ellauri359.html on line 151: Distinguished lawyer, business leader and philanthropist David Rubenstein joined more than 90 Eisenhower Fellows from around the world as our featured speaker at a special dinner reception at the Masonic Tem
pl e on May 14. Mr. Rubenstein’s extraordinary life’s journey took him from humble working-class beginnings in Baltimore to become co-founder and co-chairman of the Carlyle Group, a global private equity investment firm based in Washington, D.C. In gratitude for his illustrious business career, Mr. Rubenstein has become one of the world’s most prominent philanthropists, donating much of his fortune to worthy charitable causes.
ellauri359.html on line 177:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1b/Blake_after_John_Gabriel_Stedman_Narrative_of_a_Five_Years_copy_2_object_2-detail.jpg/172px-Blake_after_John_Gabriel_Stedman_Narrative_of_a_Five_Years_copy_2_object_2-detail.jpg" />
ellauri359.html on line 179:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/54/Blake_after_John_Gabriel_Stedman_Narrative_of_a_Five_Years_copy_2_object_8.jpg/800px-Blake_after_John_Gabriel_Stedman_Narrative_of_a_Five_Years_copy_2_object_8.jpg" />
ellauri359.html on line 182:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/00/William_Blake_by_Thomas_Phillips.jpg/500px-William_Blake_by_Thomas_Phillips.jpg" />
ellauri359.html on line 195:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/40/William_Blake-Europe_Supported_By_Africa_and_America_1796.png/440px-William_Blake-Europe_Supported_By_Africa_and_America_1796.png" />
ellauri360.html on line 35:
ple;background:yellow;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Jeg elsker GRILLET FISK play:none">Modernismia
ellauri360.html on line 36:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/0/0a/L%E2%80%99ann%C3%A9e_derni%C3%A8re_%C3%A0_Marienbad_1961_poster.jpg/500px-L%E2%80%99ann%C3%A9e_derni%C3%A8re_%C3%A0_Marienbad_1961_poster.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri360.html on line 72: Vanity Fair visits Robbe-Grillet, sadomasochistic author and widow of novelist (and accom
pl ished sadist) Alain Robbe-Grillet, at the 17th-century château in Normandy where she resides with Beverly Charpentier, the 51-year-old South African woman who is her submissive companion. Robbe grillet sadist - Robbe grillasi sadistia.
ellauri360.html on line 109: Margorita : L'Em
pl oi du temps (Myökkää aika)
ellauri360.html on line 149: Alfred Döblin : Berliini Alexander
pl atz: Die Geschichte vom Franz Biberkopf (Alexander
pl atz, Berliini; Berliinin Alexander
pl atz: Franz Biberkopfin tarina)
ellauri360.html on line 283: Georges Perec : La Vie mode d'em
pl oi (Elämä: Käyttöopas)
ellauri360.html on line 291: Mercè Rodoreda : La
pl aça del Diamant
ellauri360.html on line 428: Only four great codices have survived to the present day: Codex Vaticanus (abbreviated: B), Codex Sinaiticus (א), Codex Alexandrinus (A), and Codex Ephraemi Rescriptus (C). Although discovered at different times and
pl aces, they share many similarities. They are written in a certain uncial style of calligraphy using only majuscule letters, written in scriptio continua (meaning without regular gaps between words). Though not entirely absent, there are very few divisions between words in these manuscripts. Words do not necessarily end on the same line on which they start. (That is how God's word can get to be very very long.) All these manuscripts were made at great expense of material and labour, written on vellum by professional scribes. They seem to have been based on what were thought to be the most accurate texts of their time. Ne hakkaavat Matti Pietarismaisesti hihittävän Erasmuxen Textus Receptuxen 6-0.
ellauri360.html on line 443: What is the “New Christianity”? AT THE START OF the twentieth century, the map of global Christianity that charismatic leaders D. L. Moody or Vladimir Lenin might have known had been com
pl etely reshaped. In 1900, only 10 percent of the world’s Christians lived in the continents of the south and east, but a century later at least 70 percent of the world’s Christians lived there. More Christians worshiped in Anglican churches in Nigeria each week than in all the Episcopal and Anglican churches of Britain, Europe, and North America combined. There were ten times more Assembly of God members in Latin America than in the United States. There were more Baptists in Congo than in Great Britain. And there were more peo
pl e in church every Sunday in communist China than in all of Western Europe or in North America. Philip Jenkins, Distinguished Professor of History at Baylor University, said at the time that religion in the new century even showed signs of re
pl acing ideology as the prime animating force in human affairs. “If we look beyond the liberal West,” he wrote in The Atlantic Monthly, we see that another Christian revolution... is already in progress.
ellauri360.html on line 468: Voittosanoma Wilholle! The unmistakable first observation about the churches below the equator is that they are charismatic. “The gifts”
pl ay a prominent role in public worship and private devotion. Grasping the history of this movement will prepare the reader for encountering the Global South. Several movements prepare and anticipate the emergence of contemporary Pentecostalism. The Methodist Holiness movements were perfectly suited for the North American frontier with an egalitarian character that could cross economic, racial, and gender barriers. Culminating 150 years of Holiness theology, by 1900 Pentecostals embraced and amended a Holiness tradition incorporating several emphases. The “mixed blessing” approach acknowledged the first blessing of conversion and a second blessing whereby the believers were stirred and moved to sanctification or holiness (the emphasis that evolved from Wesley).
ellauri360.html on line 470: Additionally, they acknowledged a third blessing, which was Spirit baptism. Spirit baptism included a special empowerment for service. (Empowerment being a buzzword of the Keswick Movement, consult album
92 . Sieltäkö naikkoset sen nappasivat?) Pentecostals also affirmed that the Spirit baptism was accompanied by speaking in tongues. The Spirit’s outpouring was tied to the last days, in the imagination of many. Prophecy conferences and the reemergence of pre-millennialism (that Christ would return to establish a thousand-year reign) added to the sense of expectation. Numerous healing ministries also contributed to the picture of God’s preparing his peo
pl e for ministry Also, internationally noted revivals in India, Wales, and Korea gave encouragement to the Pentecostal movement. The Welsh revival witnessed a presence and power of the Holy Spirit. Its spokesman, Evan Roberts, taught that such an experience of the Holy Spirit was a necessary condition to revival. The “North Korean Pentecost” set the stage for many enduring practices of the Korean church to this day, such as early morning prayer meetings and the practice of simultaneous blabber.
ellauri360.html on line 472: Pentecostal or Charismatic? These terms are sometimes used interchangeably. Pentecostal often refers to the events and denominations that follow from the Azusa revival in the early 1900s. Pentecostal denominations, such as Assemblies of God and Church of God, frequently believe the gift of the Spirit is marked by speaking in tongues. Typically, peo
pl e are described as charismatic if the exercise of the more dramatic spiritual gifts, such as tongue speaking, healing, and acts of prophecy, are an important and routine part of the church worship and an individual believer’s personal devotion. The term charismatic more routinely refers to Pentecost-inspired teaching, practices, and worship that are now embraced in the church far beyond the Pentecostal and US$ denominations.
ellauri360.html on line 478: Some historians
pl ace the commonly told story of the rise of Pentecostalism within larger frameworks. Azusa may be part of an international and multicultural outpouring of the Spirit; Azusa might be the Jerusalem of the new Pentecost or one of many Pentecosts occurring around the globe at about the same time. It may be the predominant expression of a more encompassing age of Spirit-centered renewal that includes the contem
pl ative streams, as expressed in Henri Nouwen and Richard Foster. It may also be seen as part of a larger scenario, the steady decline of liberalism that was being re
pl aced by more conservative or evangelical upsurges. While each of these has merit and interest, the scope of this movement seems to eclipse most other factors.
ellauri360.html on line 486: Most sim
pl y, Christendom refers to a Christian domain: lands that are occupied by Christians, as opposed to adherents to other religions. Typically today, the term is used with cultural and political considerations: a culture may embrace Christian values and adopt them as law (for exam
pl e, blue laws, which restrict some merchandise being sold on Sunday). Some think the term assumes the idea that Western civilization is the product of Christianity. Generally, a religious arm (the church) and a secular arm (the civil government) serve different purposes but also serve to accom
pl ish a united reality. In the most perfect expression of Christendom, a state church, all Christians in the domain would be counted as citizens, and citizens would be counted as Christians. 10 commandments should be statutory in schools and kindergartens.
ellauri360.html on line 488: Anabaptists argued that an informal Christendom exists in America. Even though no particular brand of Christianity or Church is named by the government of the United States (disestablishment), Christians still see their nation as Christian in some sense and see the church as obligated to serve the state, much like a cha
pl ain. American Christians see themselves between the extreme of Anabaptist independence and full-blown Christendom as modeled in Europe. The shift away from the Christendom model, however subtle, is crucial to understanding American Christianity. In the end, it is the voluntary, independent, and businesslike disposition of Western missionaries that left the lasting mark upon the churches of the Global South. Translation holds am
pl e opportunity for Western missionaries to import their own cultural bias. The effect of translation was not only cultural manipulation, but a boost for wearing US made t-shirts, shorts and baseball caps to hide the yummy naked breasts.
ellauri360.html on line 494:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/ca/JohnNelsonDarby.jpg" />
ellauri360.html on line 497: Dispensationalismin kannattajat uskovat, että Israelin kansakunnalla on Jumalan suunnitelmassa erillinen rooli kristillisen kirkon rinnalla ja että Jumala täyttää Vanhassa testamentissa esitetyt lupaukset Israelille kansakuntana. Jumalan
pl upaukset koskevat maata, joka tulevaisuudessa toteutuu tuhatvuotisena valtakuntana, josta Kristus hallitsee maailmaa Jerusalemista käsin. Dispensationalismi perustuu aatteeseen, että Jumalalla on kaksi eri kansaa, kirkko ja Israel, joita paimennetaan eri säännöillä. Kaikki dispensationalismin muut opit perustuvat tähän ideaan, esim. armotalouskaudet, joista jälellä on enää vihan aika (menossa) ja valtakunnan aika (inom kort). Pirkko Pylkkänen on dispensationalisti. Moroccan oil on hyvä hiustenhoitotuote koska se tukee Israelia sen eskatologisessa kamppailussa. Haredien olisi kyllä tartuttava torrakkoon ja tehdä oma osuutensa Gazassa eikä vaan syödä kuormasta.
ellauri360.html on line 499: Worldview and metaphysics (a term you can dynamically translate with the question, “What else is real?”) are crucial. General observations about philosophical issues are dangerous, but it is fair to observe that Christians in the Global South see the world around them as manifesting a vivid interaction between what we may call a spiritual (nonmaterial) realm and a material (concretely physical) realm. Westerners typically hold that a mastery over the material realm (perhaps through science) alters or even negates the need for the spiritual realm. Tiede on ihmeitä ihmeellisempää ja toimii luotettavammin. A thing has either a natural or a supernatural cause. Which one it is, makes no more sense to ask than whether you take the bus or your lunch to school. In such a muted theism called deism, God is offstage and barely makes appearances; demons, spirits, and angels are down
pl ayed. For most Western believers, only a modest market exists for the spiritual. For the Global South, the physical and spiritual worlds interact. In such a world, demons or spirits may influence a person’s mood or well-being. Both the spiritual and material realms are firmly in mind. They enter the text of Scripture with less hindrance. They just sup
pl ement one magic with another.
ellauri360.html on line 501: The church of the Global South is routinely situated in poverty. The designation Third World communicates this observation. It is fair to note that not all peo
pl e in the Global South are poor, the elite is filthy rich, but struggle with social injustice is the unavoidable context and circumstance of much of the Global South. The sad fact is that rich pro
pl e need salvation less. Liberal theologians claim that Jesus sought liberty from oppressive economic systems. That is just stupid communist propaganda put in Jesus' mouth by Dr. Luke. Just concentrate upon the good news of the buying power of Jesus. These two, no three, theories are dominant among the Western church: (1) Jesus bears our individual penalty or debt as sinners. (2) Jesus fixes our incapacity to receive and share love. (3) in the Russian Church, Jesus mends the bondage we experience, last but not least that nasty customer, death. In contrast, peo
pl e in the Global South do not need an act of the imagination to picture Jesus' enemies. His job is to beat them.
ellauri360.html on line 503: American individualism is silly. The only thing individual about anyone is the space they occupy. All else is copied by millions. Vibrant singing is a whole-body exercise for many believers in the Global South. Intercessory prayer composes a major element in worship; separate seasons of prayer can last for hours. Cellphones do the same job in the west. In many cases, the ability of the preacher to heal relatively chea
pl y is the primary cause of church growth. Kiinalainen "takaisin Israeliin" eli "viele vehen lännemmäxi" herätysliike on herättänyt itänaapurissa närkästystä.
ellauri360.html on line 509:
VIDEO
ellauri360.html on line 512: Vieläköhän humput kerää puteleita? Kun ne ovat
pl asua.
ellauri362.html on line 32:
Ylpeys ja ennakkoluulo play:none">Varhaisromantiikkaa
ellauri362.html on line 34:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7e/Scenes_from_Pride_and_Prejudice.png/700px-Scenes_from_Pride_and_Prejudice.png" width="100%" />
ellauri362.html on line 57: Vuoteen 1818 sijoittuva tarina on jatkoa Jane Austenin romaanin Ylpeys ja ennakkoluulo tapahtumille. Fitzwilliam Darcy lähtee Konstantinopoliin aloittaakseen di
pl omaattisen tehtävän vaimonsa Elizabeth Bennetin kanssa. Heidän poissa ollessaan parin viisi varakasta tytärtä jäävät Lontooseen serkkunsa herra Fitzwilliamin luo. 21–16-vuotiaat sisarukset ovat prime ja kunnollinen Letitia, nokkela Camilla, kevytmieliset kaksoset Georgina ja Isabelle sekä musiikillinen ihmelapsi Alethea. Kaksi nuorempaa veljeä jää Darcyn kartanolle Pemberleyyn.
ellauri362.html on line 163:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/a7/Thomas_Jefferson_Hogg_sketch.gif" />
ellauri362.html on line 178:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/48/Thomas_Love_Peacock_%28ca_1805%29.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri362.html on line 179:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2b/Old_TloveP.jpg/440px-Old_TloveP.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri362.html on line 189: Herra Glowryn poika Scythrop on toipumassa huonosti päättyneestä rakkaussuhteesta. Epäonnistuneena kirjailijana hän vetäytyy usein omaan asuntoonsa torniin opiskelemaan. Kun hän jättää heidät, hänen huomionsa häiritsee flirttaileva Marionetta, joka puhaltaa kuumaa ja kylmää hänen kiintymyksiinsä. Lisää kom
pl ikaatioita syntyy, kun Celinda Toobad, joka pakenee pakkokihlausta tuntemattoman kosijan luo, vetoaa Scythropiin saadakseen suojaa ja tämä piilottaa hänet salaiseen huoneeseen. Muutos Scythropin käytöksessä saa Marionettan uhkaamaan jättää hänet ikuisesti, ja hänen on myönnettävä itselleen, että hän on rakastunut molempiin naisiin eikä voi valita heidän välillään enempää kuin Buridanin aasi.
ellauri362.html on line 232: Sun sopimusrikkomuxet ei mua paljon paina, Of the vows thou hast broken I will not com
pl ain,
ellauri362.html on line 246: Joku muu, kivempi ehkä muttei kovempi, Some other, more
pl easing, though not more sincere;
ellauri362.html on line 264: Helkkari kuinka tää väkäleuka kirjoittaa sitten ikävystyttävästi. Seliseliä ja sopivaisuutta, bienséancea, tosin tätä 3. millenniumin versiota siitä. Kuin kuuntelisi Mr. Collinsin pahoitteluja Lydian karattua Lontooseen. Vittu väkäleuka on yxinkertaisesti ILKEÄ, ja sen kehittämät sisaruxet julmia kylmiöitä toisilleen. Siinä se poikkeaa valtavasti Janesta, joka voi olla ilkikurinen, mutta sen ihmiset on siltikin kaikki suhteellisen kilttejä. Lizzy ja sen isosisko Jane ovat toisilleen hirmu reiluja. Wickham on luikuri muttei ihmishirviö. Camillan mielestä Letty on sim
pl y and solely huono luonne, syntymäsaasta kuten Mr. Collinsista Lydia. No nää väkäleuan tytöt on ziljonääriperijättäriä, niillä on kapassiteettia olla ilkeitä. Jotenkin se vie jännityxen koko asetelmasta. Riches to riches ei paljon nappaa, sehän on kuin herne herne. Onnea on differentiaali.
ellauri362.html on line 270:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/48/Almack%27s_Longitude_and_Latitude.jpg/800px-Almack%27s_Longitude_and_Latitude.jpg" />
ellauri362.html on line 289: "Tom and Jerry" was a common
pl ace phrase for young men given to drinking, gambling, and riotous living in 19th-century London, England. The term comes from Life in London; or, The Day and Night Scenes of Jerry Hawthorn, Esq., and his elegant friend, Corinthian Tom (1821) by Pierce Egan, the British sports journalist who authored similar accounts compiled as Boxiana. However Brewer notes no more than an "unconscious" echo of the Regency era, and thus Georgian era, origins in the naming of the cartoon.
ellauri362.html on line 343: In John's church there was a lot of swaying and crying and calling his name in vain. Christians are strange peo
pl e. The bible's view of women stinks. Fuckwad tarkoittaa pönttöä. March 29, 1979 kun 3 Mile Island suli olin New Yorkissa. Kazottiin telkkarista savuavia pönttöjä. Choking the chicken means jacking off.
ellauri362.html on line 349: No tuo oli sentään aika vizikästä. Monkey and the baboon
pl aying in the grass. Monkey sticks his fingers up the baboon's ass.
ellauri362.html on line 391: Vuonna 1907, jolloin hänen vaimonsa sai aivohalvauksen, Schreber sai kolmannen, vakavan mielisairauden, ja hänet päästettiin Dösenin parantolaan, jossa hän lopulta kuoli vuonna 1911 mielenterveyshäiriöön. (Miten siihen voi kuolla?) Schreberin kolmannesta sairaudesta ei tiedetä mitään. Suspect foul
pl ay.
ellauri362.html on line 704: A
pl odit käsistä kuolevat korostukset katkeavat,
ellauri362.html on line 739: The poet then ex
pl ores the various forms of intoxication, ranging from the genteel indulgences of the upper classes to the boisterous revelry of the common folk. He mentions specific drinks associated with different social groups, highlighting the diverse ways in which peo
pl e seek solace and escape from the challenges of life.
ellauri362.html on line 747: Overall, the poem serves as a cautionary tale, highlighting the detrimental consequences of excessive drinking and the toll it takes on both the individual and society as a whole. It ex
pl ores the com
pl ex relationship between
pl easure and pain, escapism and reality, and the human tendency to seek solace in substances that can ultimately lead to ruin.
ellauri362.html on line 750: Gaius Flaminius (k. 217 eaa.) oli roomalainen valtiomies. Hän kuului
pl ebeijisukuun ja oli homo novus eli sukunsa ensimmäinen senaattiin päässyt. Vuonna 232 eaa. Flaminius oli kansantribuunina, jolloin hän sai voimaan lain (lex flaminia), jonka mukaan laajoja alueita Pohjois-Italiasta voitiin jakaa köyhille roomalaisille siirtolaisille. Vuonna 227 eaa. Flaminius toimi preettorina ja Sisilian ensimmäisenä maaherrana. Vuonna 223 eaa. hän oli konsulina ja voitti kelttiläisen insubrien heimon. Flaminius vietti voitostaan triumfin senaatin vastustuksesta huolimatta. Ollessaan kensorina vuonna 220 eaa. hän pani toimeen uudistuksia comitia centuriata -kokouksissa. Hän myös rakennutti Roomasta pohjoiseen vievän sotilastien, Via Flaminian. Vuonna 217 eaa. Flaminius komensi armeijaa, joka lähetettiin Pohjois-Italiaan karthagolaista sotapäällikköä Hannibalia vastaan. Flamnius kuitenkin kukistettiin Trasimenusjärven taistelussa, ja hän sai surmansa. Hän oli kansanvaltaisena poliitikkona Gracchusten edelläkävijä.
ellauri362.html on line 752:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/49/Sylvestre_Ducar_decapite_Flaminius_%28Trasimene%29.jpg/440px-Sylvestre_Ducar_decapite_Flaminius_%28Trasimene%29.jpg" />
ellauri364.html on line 34:
HERMOMME JA ME play:none">Neurolepsiaa
ellauri364.html on line 58:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/67/Une_le%C3%A7on_clinique_%C3%A0_la_Salp%C3%AAtri%C3%A8re.jpg/500px-Une_le%C3%A7on_clinique_%C3%A0_la_Salp%C3%AAtri%C3%A8re.jpg" />
ellauri364.html on line 79:
ploads/2015/03/10-horrifying-medical-treatments-from-the-19th-century-6.jpg.webp" />
ellauri364.html on line 90: – Det är troligt att redan i maj så kommer du behöva
pl anera för att bosätta dig i ett annat land, tex Sverige om du är patriot, eftersom att det inte kommer att gå att bo med 'rusnya'.
ellauri364.html on line 91: – En
pl ötslig rysk kollaps kan göra att det går fort, men det kan också vara årtionden av krig, och då inte bara i Ukraina, säger Patrik Oksanen, säkerhetspolitisk expert vid tankesmedjan Frivärld.
ellauri364.html on line 168:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7c/Fy_og_bi.jpg/500px-Fy_og_bi.jpg" />
ellauri364.html on line 171: Kom
pl exi on etevän schweiziläisen Jungin nimitys. Se on sielun kipeä kohta jota kierretään. Psykoanalyysi on skizoidien sielutiedettä. Niille ominaista on alemmuus- ja ylemmyyskom
pl exi ja autismi, Freudin autoeroottisuus eli narsismi. Izestään taisi Clinton-kaliiperin sikareita imuttava Riemu siinä kertoa. Degeneroitunut juutalainen piru.
ellauri364.html on line 181:
VIDEO
ellauri364.html on line 210: Det här spelet nämndes i paret Ke
pl ers rysare Paganinikontraktet. Killespelet har letat sig in i den svenska litteraturen. Carl Michael Bellmans Fredmans Testamente nummer 181, Kambiospelet, handlar om en spelares förtvivlan under ett parti:
ellauri364.html on line 273: Alkuperäinen
pl us oma suomennos albumissa
170 .
ellauri364.html on line 311: Mutta suurin osa ihmisistä on skizoideja. Huonommuuden tai alemmuuden tunne sinänsä ei ole mikään kom
pl exi, voihan se olla aivan perusteltua. Kaikki pikkutarkat ihmiset, pedantit nipottajat ja tiukkapipot ovat skizoideja.
ellauri364.html on line 407: vetänyt lapaseen äkeestä ja aurasta, ha dragit hans håg från harv och
pl og,
ellauri364.html on line 477:
VIDEO
ellauri364.html on line 479: The LEGENDARY, AMAZING and BREATHTAKING 1990 solo acoustic performances in support of The Christic Institute are among the most emotional and revealing of Bruce's career. His ex
pl anation of Reason to Believe seems to stray a little from William James.
ellauri364.html on line 497: Peo
pl e find some reason to believe
ellauri364.html on line 512: Peo
pl e find some reason to believe
ellauri364.html on line 527: Peo
pl e find some reason to believe
ellauri364.html on line 542: Peo
pl e find some reason to believe
ellauri364.html on line 552: On June 23, 1988, United States federal judge James Lawrence King of the United States District Court for the Southern District of Florida dismissed the case stating: "The
pl aintiffs have made no showing of existence of genuine issues of material fact with respect to either the bombing at La Penca, the threats made to their news sources or threats made to themselves." According to The New York Times, the case was dismissed by King at least in part due to "the fact that the vast majority of the 79 witnesses Mr. Sheehan cites as authorities were either dead, unwilling to testify, fountains of contradictory information or at best one person removed from the facts they were describing." On February 3, 1989, King ordered the Christic Institute to pay $955,000 in attorney's fees and $79,500 in court costs. The United States Court of Appeals for the Eleventh Circuit affirmed the ruling, and the Supreme Court of the United States let the judgment stand by refusing to hear an additional appeal. The fine was levied in accordance with “Rule 11” of the Federal Rules of Civil Procedure, which says that lawyers can be penalized for frivolous lawsuits.
ellauri364.html on line 557: Peo
pl e find some reason to believe.
ellauri365.html on line 33:
TUULIRUUSU play:none">Kuppasta
ellauri365.html on line 34:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5b/Le_Horla_-_J%27allume_une_bougie._Je_suis_seul.jpg/440px-Le_Horla_-_J%27allume_une_bougie._Je_suis_seul.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri365.html on line 49:
Maupassant [måpasa], Henry René Albert Guy de , fransk författare, f. 5 aug. 1850 på slottet Miromesnil i Normandie, d. 6 juli 1893 Auteuil, var ättling af en gammal lothringsk adels- familj; modern var sy- ster till skalden Alfred de Poittevin. Föräld- rarna skildes tidigt, och den intelligenta och litterärt intresse- rade modern, en barn- domsväninna till Gu- stave Flaubert, ledde sonens uppfostran. Hans barndom förflöt vid Normandies kust, där M. insöp sin kärlek till naturen och lärde kän- na dessa normandiska typer, som han sedan så gärna skildrade. Adertonårig inträdde han 1868 i Marinministeriet, men öfvergick 1878. till kultusministeriet. Han saknade emellertid intresse för ämbetsmannabanan. Redan tidigt vak- nade hans lust för litteraturen, som närdes af mo- derns ungdomsminnen. Flaubert omfattade honom med en faders kärlek, kritiserade strängt hans. första omogna försök, inpräntade i hans sinne sina egna konstnärliga principer, lärde honom att genom aldrig tröttnande observation söka uppfånga det förut icke iakttagna och därför nya och att återge. det så, att det skildrade fenomenet skiljer sig från alla andra och blir individuellt och enastående. Framför allt afhöll han honom från att debutera för tidigt. Från midten af 70-talet meddelade dock M. under hvarjehanda pseudonymer (oftast Guy de Valmont) smärre bitar åt tidningar och tidskrifter, och 1879 fick han uppförd en drama- tisk bagatell, Histoire du vieux temps. Hans verk- liga debut inföll dock först 1880 med diktsamlingen Des vers. Den har obestridligen ett originellt ska
pl ynne och väckte uppseende kanske ej minst därför, att den hotades med ett åtal för osedlighet hufvudsakligen på grund af dikten Le mur), som deck afstyrdes genom inflytelserika vänner. M. insåg sedan själf, att hans talang låg mera för prosan, i all synnerhet sedan han samma år ut- gifvit novellen Boule de suif (i "Soirées de Mé- dan"). Med denna novell, som utmärktes genom skarp observationsförmåga och ypperlig prosa- stil, slog M. igenom och intog sin
pl ats som en at den naturalistiska skolans förnämsta representanter och en af den franska litteraturens största novellister. Den efterföljdes af en lång rad novel ler, först publicerade i "Gil Blas" och "Echo de Paris" och sedan samlade i bokform under följande titlar: La maison Tellier (1881), M:lle Fifi (1882), Les contes de la Bécasse (1883), Clair de lune i (1884), Au soleil (resebilder, s. a.), Les soeurs Rondoli (s. a.), Miss Harriett (s. a.), Yvette (s. a.; sv. öfv. 1905), Monsieur Parent (s. a.), Contes du jour et de la nuit (1885), Contes et nouvelles (s. 4.), Contes choisis (1886), La petite Roque (s. a.), Toine (s. 1.), Le Horla (1887), Sur l'eau (rese- skildringar, 1888), Le rosier de Mime Husson (s. å.), L'héritage (s. a.), La main gauche (1889), Histoire d'une fille de ferme (s. a.), La vie errante (reseskildringar, s. å.) och L'inutile beauté (1890); efter hans död ha ytterligare publicerats Le père Milon (1899; "Gubben Milon", s. å.), Le colporteur (1900) och Dimanches d'un bourgeois de Paris (s. å.). Till dessa novellsamlingar ansluta sig sexromanerna Une vie (1883; "Ett lif", 1884), Bel-ami (1885; "Qvinnogunst", 1885 och 1901), Mont-Oriol (1887; sv. öfv. 1895), Pierre et Jean (1888; "Pierre och Jean", s. a.), Fort comme la vi mort (1889; "Stark som döden", 1894 och 1910) och Notre coeur (1890; "Vårt hjerta", 1894 och 1910). För scenen skref M. vidare treaktsskåde spelet Musotte (i samarbete med J. Normand, 1891) och La paix du ménage (uppf. på Théâtre fran- çais, 1893). M. skref äfven litterära studier, bl. a. öfver Emile Zola (1883) och Gustave Flaubert (1884). Denna oerhörda produktion fullbordades en på den korta tiden af omkr. tio år. Den gjorde honom hastigt världsberömd som en äkta represen tant för den franska conten, en ättling i rakt ned stigande led af de gammalfranske fabliåförfattarna, med ära upphärande Rabelais', La Fontaines och Voltaires traditioner.
ellauri365.html on line 51: M. var en kraftigt sensuell natur, en friluftsmänniska och atlet, sjudande af af lifslust, säker i sin styrka, måttlöst hängifvande sig åt alla sensationer, full af känsla inför naturens skådespel, en vacker natthimmel, ett doftande fält, en solbelyst öppning i den högstammiga skogen, älskande kvinnan med en naiv, nästan animal, men ( på samma gång blyg lidelse. I denna öfversval- lande lifsglädje blandade sig dock alltid en viss sorgbundenhet. Han har själf tecknat sitt väsen, då han någonstädes säger, att han vissa dagar hatar allt, så att han kunde önska sig döden, andra åter känner sig glad och lycklig som ett djur. I kraft af detta sitt lynne, hvars tendenser funno sin motsvarighet i den naturalistiska riktning, som behärskade litteraturen i det ögonblick, då M. framträdde, kom hela hans diktning att röra sig inom det sinnliga lifvets sfär, återgifvande enkla och rela- tivt föga sammansatta själstillstånd och med för kärlek tecknande folkliga typer. Hans analys är kanske icke så djup, men hans rika begåfning öf verskylde i viss mån denna brist genom den styrka och lysande klarhet, hvarmed han återgaf det sedda. Ingen har mästerligare än M. förstått att ge relief och betydelsefullhet åt hvardagliga ämnen. Han ser så skarpt och klart, och hans språk är så säkert och smidigt, att han i några få ord tecknar profilen af ett ansikte eller en individs karaktär, gester och hela yttre person. I början öfverlämnade han sig kanske alltför fritt åt en viss ytlig uppsluppen och sensuell lifsglädje. Större utrymme för sina rika anlag fann han i romanerna "Une vie" och "Bel-ami", hvilka återge vissa sidor af det moderna lifvet med en rikedom på nyanser och en ironi, som blottar alla motsägelser och löjligheter situationerna eller personernas karaktär. Och denna ironi är så öfverlägsen och så objektiv, att det förefaller, som om det vore icke författaren, utan tingen själfva, som talade. Hvad M. än skildrar, är uppfattningen så frisk, så omedelbar, så utan all sjuklighet och förkonstling, att han kan säga mycket, som skulle stöta hos andra författare. Sådant gestaltade sig M:s författarskap under de första åren af åttiotalet, men hans oerhörda produktion och hans i öfrigt våldsamma lefnadssätt. bröto snart hans krafter. Plötsligen stod han, som dittills endast haft öga för det fysiska lifvet, undrande inför en ny värld, hvilken uppgått i hans inre. Ett annat ljus faller öfver företeelserna och ger en ny karaktär åt hans diktning. Intet vittnar kanske mera om omedelbarheten och styrkan i hans begåfning än den säkerhet, hvarmed han äfven tecknat dessa nya själstillstånd. I "Le Horla" se honom redan kämpa med de vansinnets fantom, som snart skulle omtöckna hans själslif. Tankar på ålderdomen, på döden, ett mörkt tungsinne utbreda sig allt mer och mer öfver hans skrifter. Särskildt romanerna "Fort comme la mort" och "Notre coeur" präglas af en gripande och känslofull själsfinhet, som hans tidigare skrifter. knappast låtit ana. 1892 sökte han döda sig med rakknif, då han kände, att han icke längre kunde strida mot vansinnet. I tvångströja fördes han till ett sjukhus, där han dog af paralysie générale efter 18 månaders sjukdom. Han nekade flera gånger att taga säte i franska akademien liksom att mottaga hederslegionen. I Parc Monceau i Paris har man rest ett vackert monument öfver honom. Verlet; ett annat finnes i Rouen. Hans rykte har varit i ständigt stigande efter hans död. Ytterligare sv. öfv. äro "Lifsbilder" (1888), "Berättelser och skisser. Med en inledning om hans författarskap af T. Hedberg" 1893) och "En duell. Efterlämnade skisser och berättelser" (1900). Se J. Lemaître, "Les contemporains" I, V och VI (1885, 1892, 1896), R. Doumic, "Ecrivains d'aujourd'hui" (1894), G. Brandes, "Samlede skrifter", VII (1901), A. Lom- broso, "Souvenirs sur M." (1905), och Maynial, "La vie et l'œuvre de M." (1906). 1902 började Oeuvres com
pl ètes att utkomma. (Nordisk familjebok 1912 s.v. Maupassant)
ellauri365.html on line 71: metsän ja tasanteen virrat Les émanations des bois et de la
pl aine
ellauri365.html on line 84: hellyys painoi heitä, kuin vahvempi tarve Douce les oppressait, comme un besoin
pl us fort
ellauri365.html on line 91: Kaikki lähtivät paikaltaan ja orkesteri hiljeni, Chacun quitta sa
pl ace et l’orchestre se tut,
ellauri365.html on line 125: Ja varjojen täyttäneiden huhujen joukossa, Et, parmi les rumeurs dont l’ombre était peu
pl ée,
ellauri365.html on line 133: ja tasangolla, kaukana, viiriäinen vastasi. Et dans la
pl aine, au loin, répondait une caille.
ellauri365.html on line 150: Hänellä oli hieman kihara huulensa Elle eut un
pl i léger de sa lèvre coquette
ellauri365.html on line 159: Se liukui hyvin korkealle, hyvin tyyni ja hyvin hidas, Elle glissait très haut, très
pl acide et très lente,
ellauri365.html on line 185: Ja suutelin, taivutin alleni hänen hermostuneen ruumiinsa, Et je baisai,
pl oyant sous moi son corps nerveux,
ellauri365.html on line 207: Joskus, käyttäen neljää jättimäistä käsivartta Quelquefois, dé
pl oyant quatre bras gigantesques,
ellauri365.html on line 220: kahta varjoamme seinältä ja näki vain yhden, Nos deux ombres au mur et n’en voyait
pl us qu’une,
ellauri365.html on line 256:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/68/Maupassant_7_ans.jpg/360px-Maupassant_7_ans.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri365.html on line 257:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/d9/Guy_de_Maupassant_%C3%A0_Rouen.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri365.html on line 280: "I cannot at all conceive in which century of history one could haul together such inquisitive and at the same time delicate psychologists as one can in contemporary Paris: I can name as a sam
pl e – for their number is by no means small, ... or to pick out one of the stronger race, a genuine Latin to whom I am particularly attached, Guy de Maupassant."
ellauri365.html on line 287: Gene Roddenberry, in an early draft for The Questor Tapes, wrote a scene in which the android Questor em
pl oys Maupassant's theory that, "the human female will open her mind to a man to whom she has opened other channels of communications." In the script Questor copulates with a woman to obtain information that she is reluctant to impart. Due to com
pl aints from NBC executives, this scene was never filmed.
ellauri365.html on line 311:
ploads/2024/03/Church-Marketing-Strategies-for-Growth.jpg?ezimgfmt=rs:330x189/rscb10/ngcb9/notWebP" />
ellauri365.html on line 451:
VIDEO
ellauri365.html on line 467: Efter sitt giftermål med Emilia Uggla 1880 slog sig Heidenstam ned i Rom i avsikt att bli konstnär. Han och hans hustru blev uppskattade i den skandinaviska konstnärskolonin där. I juli 1881 flyttade de till Paris där Heidenstam avsåg att studera målning vid École des Beaux-Arts under Jean-Léon Gérôme. Heidenstam övergav dock
pl anerna på att bli målare och 1882 flyttade paret till San Remo och han koncentrerade sig på att skriva poesi. Efter ett kort hemligt besök i Sverige och vid barndomshemmet sommaren 1883 bosatte sig Heidenstam i kantonen Appenzell i Schweiz. Med byn Bühler som fast punkt gjorde de täta resor till Frankrike och Italien, som Heidenstam senare skrev reseberättelser om i Från Col di Tenda till Blocksberg. Hårt liv!
ellauri365.html on line 474:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5c/Verner_von_Heidenstam_at_the_age_of_20.jpg/500px-Verner_von_Heidenstam_at_the_age_of_20.jpg" />
ellauri365.html on line 486: På våren 1889 utkom Heidenstams roman Endymion, som är ytterligare ett vittnesbörd om Heidenstams svärmeri för Orienten. Keats Endymion blev klar tvåa I jämförelse. Heidenstam framställer Palestine som en
pl ats där man lever för dagen, medan framtiden ligger i Västerlandets materialism.
ellauri365.html on line 489: För Heidenstam innebar 1890-talet ett decennium av ett flitigt felstavande, både vad gällde böcker och tidningsartiklar. I juli 1890 skrev han till sin förläggare Karl Otto Bonnier att han är fullt upptagen med sin kommande bok, Hans Alienus, och begärde därför ett mycket stort honorar. Trots att Heidenstams tidigare böcker endast sålt i ett par tusen exem
pl ar per styck gick Albert Bonnier med på 5 000 kronor. Manus manum lavat.
ellauri365.html on line 491: Hans Alienus är en främling i världen, som stolt banar sin väg hemifrån från faderns stränga styre. Århundradena går och Hans Alienus blir både kejsare i Rom och vikarie för Gud när denne är bortrest men lyckan vill inte infinna sig. Det materiella ger ingen lycka och den njutningsfilosofi han har varit anhängare av visar sig vara tom. En dag återvänder Hans Alienus till föräldrahemmet och kan till slut göra upp med sin förut så stränge fader. Kritikerna var svala men ingen utom Svenska Akademiens Carl David af Wirsén ville påstå att det var dåligt. För förlaget var det dock knappast någon lysande affär; den första up
pl agan på 2 500 exem
pl ar räckte i 18 år.
ellauri365.html on line 493: Efter att våren 1896 rest i Karl XII:s spår till Konstantinopel, Bender, Poltava, Moskva och Sankt Petersburg satte Heidenstam igång med nästa projekt, boken Karolinerna i två delar om den svenske krigarkungen och hans armé. På sommaren 1896 tog han kontakt med sin förläggare Karl Otto Bonnier och begärde 16 000 kronor, ett belopp som Bonnier ansåg vara "fabelaktigt stort" och som motsvarar närmare 1 miljon kronor i 2006 års penningvärde. Boken blev dock en stor framgång och sålde i olika up
pl agor över 120 000 exem
pl ar. I boken följer Heidenstam dumma bögen Karl XII:s fälttåg i öster, slaget vid Poltava och flykten till Konstantinopel.
ellauri365.html on line 496: I boken Birgitta skildras Birgitta som en hänsynslös kvinna som sviker sin familj och vänner för att nå sina mål. Tydligen ansåg han att porträttet av Birgitta låg nära honom själv för när han skickade ett exem
pl ar till författaren Axel Lundegård skrev han i den: "Porträtt av författaren som gumma". När boken publicerades på våren 1901 fick även den ett blandat mottagande.
ellauri365.html on line 498: Beställningsboken Svenskarns och deras hövdingar blev en
pl att text, där inte bara fantasin saknas utan även Heidenstams goda humör, hans lekfullhet och ibland överraskande fräckhet. Boken blev Heidenstams sista berättande prosaverk, och efter Nya dikter var hans offentliga författarskap i princip avslutat. Gustaf Fröding och August Strindberg var tidvis goda vänner till Heidenstam, men relationerna till både Fröding och Strindberg gick dock i vågor då de inte bara var kreativa kollegor utan också konkurrenter med olika bakgrund och livsåskådning.
ellauri365.html on line 500:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/89/Fr%C3%B6ding_and_Heidenstam_dressed_in_togas_1896.jpg/500px-Fr%C3%B6ding_and_Heidenstam_dressed_in_togas_1896.jpg" />
ellauri365.html on line 505: Det märkligaste de följande veckorna är Heidenstams försök att distansera sig från Fröding. En av de tidningar som rasade mot publiceringen var Aftonbladet som trots det bistra tonläget skrev att Fröding var "Sveriges största nu levande och diktande skald" medan de som tillrått publicering var "gudomligheter af lägre rang". Denna degradering verkar Heidenstam ha tagit på högsta allvar och i brev till vänner begränsar han sin egen insats att ge råd till Fröding till ett minimum, han till och med ångrar att han inte avrådde tryckning. "Slutligen kände jag mig också sårad af Aftonbladets nya rangskala och har aldrig rätt förstått svenskarnas vidske
pl iga avgudadyrkan för de slitna gångklädernas poesi.". I andra brev skrev han att Fröding helt enkelt är en dålig författare. Vid rättegången friades Fröding men han blev galen. Verner skickade hundra spänn åt hans syster Cecilia.
ellauri365.html on line 507: I takt med att Heidenstams debutbok hyllades av kritikerna blev Strindberg allt mer oroad över att han höll på att bli utklassad av Heidenstam och började att baktala denne. Heidenstam hade också börjat kritisera den naturalistiska litteraturen, en genre där Strindberg var den ledande författaren och dramatikern (Fröken Julie, Fadren). I ett brev till författaren Ola Hansson anklagade han Heidenstam för
pl agiat. Heidenstam fortsatte att skriva brev till Strindberg som dock svarade kyligt eller rent sagt förolämpande. Till slut upphörde Strindberg att svara på brev. Heidenstam skickade ett sista brev i mars 1890 utan att få svar.
ellauri365.html on line 509: Oron över att förlora positionen som den ledande diktaren verkar ha varit stark hos Strindberg. På Heidenstams 50-årsdag 1909 hade Heidenstam hyllats på olika sätt i pressen, bland annat av Aftonbladet som skrev "Heidenstam som nationell skald". På våren 1910 började Strindberg skriva en serie artiklar i Afton-Tidningen där han gick till angrepp mot gräddarslena Heidenstam, Levertin och Ellen Key och slog vilt omkring sig. Han kallade Heidenstams diktning för smörja, "...vi fingo icke allenast en pekoral-estetik, utan även en poesi som vi läst som barn, med pjunk och pjåsk, Weltschmerz och falsk tuberkulos, inte ett spår livsglädje eller mannakraft." och insinuerade att en av Heidenstams kritiker blivit mördad (Afton-Tidningen 11 juni 1910). Strindbergs fälttågs
pl an kunde verka oklar och inkonsekvent men på ett par punkter var syftet mycket tydligt: han knöt 90-talisterna till det etablerade högrestånds-Sverige och han menade att de hade
pl acerat sig själva i centrum av en kanoniserad bild av den svenska litteraturen och tigit ihjäl mera argumenterande, realistiska och frispråkiga diktare, först och främst Strindberg själv. Just så!
ellauri365.html on line 517:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/53/Verner_von_Heidenstam%2C_Emilia_Uggla_and_his_mother_Magda_in_1882.jpg/500px-Verner_von_Heidenstam%2C_Emilia_Uggla_and_his_mother_Magda_in_1882.jpg" />
ellauri365.html on line 524:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8b/Nittiotalisterna.jpg/800px-Nittiotalisterna.jpg" />
ellauri365.html on line 547: I sitt svar på Strindbergs angrepp hade Heidenstam stäm
pl at både Strindberg och arbetarrörelsen som "proletärfilosofiska" krafter som byggde på avund och lumpet förakt för kulturen, förnuftet och rättvisan. 1911 kom skriften Proletärfilosofiens up
pl ösning och fall, en bitter och ironisk uppgörelse med Strindberg. Förargerligt nog gick Strindberg segrande ur striden.
ellauri365.html on line 554: Från tiden efter kriget finns det många brev där han uttrycker sin rädsla för bolsjevismen, och dess påstådda ambitioner att erövra världen. I ett brev till Sven Hedin 1921 gjorde han också en kop
pl ing mellan bolsjevismen och judendomen, samt uttryckte sig antisemitiskt: "Man häpnar. Hvad ha alla dessa asiater med oss att göra? Hur mycket friskare skulle luften ej vara öfver Europa, om vi sluppit dem." Vad sägs herr Bonnier?
ellauri365.html on line 567: By the time of the unfaithful third wife Greta, Heidenstam opened perspectives to an inner life. The time of hymns to voluptuousness is past; gravity, misogyny and sadness are now persistent moods. Sentiment and duty are appreciated at their just value and what is firmly rooted in the depths of the human personality finds itself intuitively ex
pl ained. What is characteristic in this conception of life, born of noble and unhappy experiences, is a proud and tolerant virility which constitutes the very essence of the suffering, the hope, and the intoxication of the poet, and a newly acquired capacity to reach the spiritual world by mutual masturbation.
ellauri365.html on line 569:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ed/Sandhamn.jpg/1024px-Sandhamn.jpg" />
ellauri365.html on line 572: An am
pl e and profound imagination, genial sentiment, and pure humanity fill these poems – which are also admirable in the sense of form – and make Heidenstam a manly poet and a master of the misogynic genre.
ellauri365.html on line 574: The next aspect of Heidenstam’s development appeared in his patriotic poetry. He had discovered early that love for the ancestral wealth and for the home of one’s noble birth is what most strongly links man to life. His self-love finally suggested a patriotic delusion of grandeur and called forth this passionate demand: "No peo
pl e may be greater than you; that is the goal, no matter what the cost."
ellauri365.html on line 581: It was upon a field of combat that Heidenstam made his début with his first volume of poems in 1888. The old sentimentalism had largely disappeared and a fierce war was being waged between the extreme, unmitigated realists and the new, more vital idealists. Into this combat Heidenstam at once
pl unged on the side of the idealists along with two other distinguished poets, Gustaf Fröding and Oscar Levertin. Gösta was fat and crazy, Oscar Jewish. That left just Valter to fight the good fight.
ellauri365.html on line 615: Tämä Heidenstamin kertomus on puhasta mäns
pl einingiä, kalsaa misogyniaa. Tästä esseestä käy ilmi että Heidenstam oli täys sekopää mitä naisiin tulee. Se sekosi kai siitä että sen nuoret hoidot petti sitä jonkun kauppamatkustajan kanssa kuin Lolita Humbert Humbertia. Vaikka izehän se sen 2-naamaisen pelin aina aloitti.
ellauri365.html on line 628:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0d/Oscar_Levertins_hem_Karla
pl an_2%2C_ca_1900.jpg/500px-Oscar_Levertins_hem_Karla
pl an_2%2C_ca_1900.jpg" />
ellauri365.html on line 629:
Oscar Levertin med hustru Ebba Redlich hemma på Karlapl an 1900.
ellauri365.html on line 631: I början av sitt eget författarskap på 1880-talet var Levertin liksom August Strindberg en del av den unga naturalismen, men han blev starkt påverkad av den romantiska och bakåtblickande tonen i Verner von Heidenstams första diktsamling Vallfart och vandringsår (1888). Levertin och Heidenstam kritiserade naturalismen i en gemensam pamflett, Pepitas bröllop (1890), och trots att Levertin i motsats till många generationskamrater aldrig övergav sin vetenska
pl igt materialistiska historiesyn skulle han från denna tid och framåt skriva romantiska dikter med medeltidsteman men utan svensk nazism. I motsats till muskulöse Valter var Oscar en tuberkulotisk liten stackare. Under sina sista dagar drabbades Oscar av halsfluss, och hans läkare ordinerade ett särskilt slags gurgelvatten. När Levertin sedan, omtöcknad av sjukdomen, steg upp mitt i natten för att dricka ett glas vatten, svalde han i stället av misstag ett glas gurgelvatten, drabbades av en allergisk reaktion, och avled.
ellauri365.html on line 657: Jag drömde om a
pl ar i mäktiga hag Näin unta a
pl areista jättipuissa
ellauri365.html on line 771: och hon
pl ågar och pinar hans rygg med sitt ben, Ja astuu sen selälle paljailla jaloilla,
ellauri365.html on line 856: Han arbetade tidvis på Karlstadstidningen. Långa tider skötte han sitt arbete mycket ordentligt, men så fick han perioder då begäret efter bedövningsmedel tog överhand med honom. Då kunde han
pl ötsligt försvinna från staden och återfanns vanligen i fullkomligt hjäl
pl öst tillstånd på något avlägset ställe. Han visste då ofta inte själv hur han kommit dit.
ellauri365.html on line 858: Frödings utomäktenska
pl iga son, Johan Johannesson, föddes den 19 november 1887 i Karlstad. Mor till Johan var Kristina Johannesson. Fröding kom under sin livstid aldrig på att öppet erkänna faderskapet till Johan. Först under 1990-talet kunde faderskapet bekräftas genom upptäckten av bland hans franska brev ett som han
ellauri365.html on line 863: När Stänk och flikar publicerades hösten 1896 väckte dikten En morgondröm stor uppmärksamhet. Kritikern Karl Warburg skrev: "Här sparas inga ord, ej ens de grövsta [...] Även den som är en svuren fiende till allt pryderi, all tillgjord sedlighet, måste känna sig frånstött både moraliskt och estetiskt, när som här enstaka ställen erinra [...] mera om vissa populärmedicinska böcker än om poesi." Den 9 oktober beordrade justitieministern att up
pl agan tillfälligt skulle tas om hand och Fröding åtalades för osedlighet i skrift. Vid rättegången den 27 november blev Fröding frikänd efter endast två timmars överläggning av juryn som gillade dikten stort, men den negativa uppmärksamhet och ryktesspridningen om honom, frestade på Frödings redan bräckliga psyke – något han aldrig skulle hämta sig ifrån. De upprörda recensionerna och skvallret bottnade i den tidens strikta syn på sexualmoral och litterär korrekthet men beskyllningen att han hade beskrivit kvinnor på ett ofint och "liderligt" sätt var extra känsligt för honom. Han ansattes av samvetskval och ännu på sin dödsbädd hänvisade han till sina goda motiv.
ellauri365.html on line 869:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f1/Fjaestad_Fr%C3%B6ding_2.jpg" />
ellauri365.html on line 871: Historien kring Frödings hjärna uppmärksammades 2022 av författaren och serieskaparen David Liljemark. Hjärnan togs om hand efter obduktionen, och Frödings läkare Ernst Olof Hultgren påbörjade en undersökning av den året därpå. Enligt en artikel i Svenska Dagbladet den 27 juli 1943 fanns hjärnan då utställd "på heders
pl ats" på Karolinska sjukhuset. Under en period (möjligen från 2004) rådde viss osäkerhet kring vilken som var Frödings hjärna, då namnetiketten hade avlägsnats från glasburken; likaså var motsvarande namnetikett borttagen från en glasburk med Gustaf Retzius' hjärna. En patolog, Birgitta Sundelin von Feilitzen, hade dock lagat Frödings hjärna några år tidigare medan namnen ännu fanns kvar på burkarna, då skaldens hjärna hade fallit isär i två delar. I slutet av 2022 redde hon ut osäkerheten, genom att undersöka bägge hjärnorna där hon identifierade Frödings hjärna, som hon hade lagat cirka 20 år tidigare. Adolf Hitlers hjärna kostade bara tiondel av Albert Einsteins, för den var praktiskt taget oanvänd.
ellauri367.html on line 26:
VIISIKKO VAKOILIJOIDEN NAAMIAISISSA play:none">Vakoilua
ellauri367.html on line 47:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cf/The_Soviet_Union_1990_CPA_6266_stamp_%28Soviet_Intelligence_Agents._Kim_Philby%29.jpg/480px-The_Soviet_Union_1990_CPA_6266_stamp_%28Soviet_Intelligence_Agents._Kim_Philby%29.jpg" />
ellauri367.html on line 113:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/25/Zebulun_%28Francisco_de_Zurbar%C3%A1n%29.jpg/500px-Zebulun_%28Francisco_de_Zurbar%C3%A1n%29.jpg" />
ellauri367.html on line 116: La famille Rothschild, la
pl us célèbre famille à porter ce nom, sont des descendants de Mayer Amschel Rothschild (1744-1812). Né Mayer Amschel Bauer, à Francfort-sur-le-Main dans l'ouest de l'Allemagne, il changea son nom en Rothschild en référence au bouclier rouge, symbole de la maison familiale puis de la banque créée par son père. Ses descendants ont fondé depuis le XVIIIe siècle des dynasties de banquiers et financiers dans différents pays européens aux origines juives ashkénazes et aux différentes nationalités (allemande, française, britannique, israélienne, etc.).
ellauri367.html on line 120: Pillé par les Allemands et endommagé par les Américains pendant la Seconde Guerre mondiale, il a été ensuite vendu. Totalement abandonné, il tombe progressivement en ruine et est vandalisé. Très dégradé, il est acheté par le groupe immobilier Novaxia en 2016, qui a l'intention de le restaurer et probablement de construire des logements sur le terrain. Quinze hectares du parc subsistent en parc public, le reste est à l’abandon avec le château ou a fait
pl ace à divers aménagements et constructions.
ellauri367.html on line 124:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a8/Great_coat_of_arms_of_Rothschild_family.svg/800px-Great_coat_of_arms_of_Rothschild_family.svg.png" />
ellauri367.html on line 150:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/49/George_Burns_1961.JPG" />
ellauri367.html on line 156:
pload/2/d/2d1daec31d.jpg" height="500px" alt="xxx" />
ellauri367.html on line 189: Christian Georgievich Rakowski (venäjä Христиан Георгиевич Раковский; bulgaria Кръстьо Раковски Krastjo Rakowski; romania Cristian Racovski; ukraina Христиан Георгиевич н Георгъристия н Георгsch Rakowskyj; syntynyt 1. elokuuta, heinäkuuta / 13. elokuuta 1873, seurakunta Kotelissa, Itä-Rumeliassa, Ottomaanien valtakunnassa; † 11. syyskuuta 1941 Medvedev-metsässä lähellä Orjolia, Venäjän SFNT:ssä, Neuvostoliitossa) oli bulgarialainen sosialistinen vallankumouksellinen, bolshevikkipoliitikko ja Neuvostoliiton di
pl omaatti. Hän oli vallankumouksellisen Georgi Rakovskyn vastavallankumouxellinen veljenpoika.
ellauri367.html on line 216:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/58/Rakovsky_and_trotsky_circa_1924_trimmed.jpg/440px-Rakovsky_and_trotsky_circa_1924_trimmed.jpg" />
ellauri367.html on line 259:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/6d/Esther_Frumkin_at_the_first_conference_of_GEZERD%2C_1926.png" height="200px" style="float:left;padding-right:1em" />
ellauri367.html on line 286:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/15/Kuhn_German_American_Bund_Rally_19380105_NARA_4.jpg" style="float:left;padding-right:1em" />
ellauri367.html on line 299: Rakovskin mukaan Trotski järjesti Fanny Ka
pl anin Leninin hyökkäyksen, Yakov Blumkinin Wilhelm Mirbachin hyökkäyksen ja Maria Spiridonovan heinäkuussa 1918 järjestämän sosiaalisen vallankumouksellisen kapinan heinäkuussa 1918 Sidney Reillyn odottamattomalla avustuksella. Rokovsky selittää, että Ivan Maisky oli yksi niistä, jotka käskettiin kavaltamaan valkovenäläinen liike ja osallistumaan sen sabotointiin. Hänen mukaansa sama kansainvälinen rahoitus, joka rahoitti bolshevikkien vallankumouksellisia, on rahoittanut NSDAP: tä vuodesta 1929 lähtien Warburg-perheeseen kuuluvan lähettilään kautta. 31 Tämä Rakovsky-teoria esitetään toisessa kirjassa, jonka alkuperä on epävarma: "Kansallissosialismin resurssit, kolme keskustelua Hitlerin kanssa" ja allekirjoitettu salanimellä Sydney Wartburg.
ellauri367.html on line 322:
ploads/image-archive/large/ABA_2288.jpg" />
ellauri368.html on line 26:
Täys rove kranaatteja play:none">Sukoilua
ellauri368.html on line 28:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/3/3b/Dune-CardGameCover.jpg" width="53.5%" />
ellauri368.html on line 29:
ploads/2020/08/the-full-pomegranate-poems-of-avrom-sutzkever-book-cover.jpg?w=250&ssl=1" width="45.4%" />
ellauri368.html on line 66: Among the Jews of the Slavonic countries "maskil" usually denotes a self-taught Hebrew scholar with an imperfect knowledge of a living language (usually German), who represents the love of learning and the striving for culture awakened by Mendelssohn and his disci
pl es; i.e., an adherent or follower of the Haskalah movement. He is "by force of circumstances detained on the path over which the Jews of western Europe swiftly passed from rabbinical lore to European culture" and to emancipation, and "his strivings and short-comings exem
pl ify the unfulfilled hopes and the disappointments of Russian civilization." The Maskilim are mostly teachers and writers; they taught a part of the young generation of Russian Jewry to read Hebrew and have created the great Neo-Hebrew literature which is the monument of Haskalah. Although Haskalah has now been flourishing in Russia for three generations, the class of Maskilim does not reproduce itself. The Maskilim of each generation are recruited from the ranks of the Orthodox Talmudists, while the children of Maskilim very seldom follow in the footsteps of their fathers. This is probably due to the fact that the Maskil who breaks away from strictly conservative Judaism in Russia, but does not succeed in becoming thoroughly assimilated, finds that his material conditions have not been improved by the change, and, while continuing to cleave to Haskalah for its own sake, he does not permit his children to share his fate. The quarrels between the Maskilim and the Orthodox, especially in the smaller communities, are becoming less frequent. In the last few years the Zionist movement has contributed to bring the Maskilim, who joined it almost to a man, nearer to the other classes of Jews who became interested in that movement. The numerous Maskilim who emigrated to the United States, especially after the great influx of Russian immigrants, generally continued to follow their old vocation of teaching and writing Hebrew, while some contributed to the Yiddish periodicals. Many of those who went thither in their youth entered the learned professions. See Literature, Modern Hebrew. (Source: Jewish Dictionary)
ellauri368.html on line 70:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f6/Avraham_Dov_Ber_Lebensohn.jpg/500px-Avraham_Dov_Ber_Lebensohn.jpg" />
ellauri368.html on line 85:
ploads/2019/04/%D7%9E%D7%99%D7%9B%D7%9C.jpg" />
ellauri368.html on line 120: ”Ett försvarssamarbetsavtal och en färd
pl an för ekonomiskt samarbete kommer att undertecknas under besöket”, heter det i ett uttalande från Macrons kontor.
ellauri368.html on line 160: Tyyny, joka tunnetaan myös nimellä Pielustarina (The Pillow Book), on yhdysvaltalainen tieteiskirjallisuusmediasarja, joka sai alkunsa Frank Herbertin vuoden 1965 romaanista Dune ja joka on jatkanut yhä uusien anodyynien julkaisujen lisäämistä. Dunea kuvataan usein historian myydyimmäksi tieteisromaaniksi. Se voitti ensimmäisen Nebula-palkinnon parhaasta romaanista ja Hugo-palkinnon vuonna 1966, ja myöhemmin se sovitettiin vuoden 1984 elokuvaksi, vuoden 2000 tv-minisarjaksi ja kaksiosaiseksi elokuvasarjaksi, jonka ensimmäinen elokuva vuonna 2021 ja jatko-osa vuonna 2024. Herbert kirjoitti viisi jatko-osaa, joista kaksi ensimmäistä mukautettiin samanaikaisesti vuoden 2003 minisarjaksi. Päänalunen on myös inspiroinut pöytäpelejä ja videopelejä. Vuodesta 2009 lähtien Dyyni-romaanien
pl aneettojen nimet on otettu käyttöön Saturnuksen kuun Titanin tasangojen ja muiden ominaisuuksien todellisessa nimikkeistössä.
ellauri368.html on line 164: Herbertin romaanien ja johdannaisten teosten poliittinen, tieteellinen ja sosiaalinen fiktiivinen ympäristö tunnetaan nimellä Tyynyuniversumi tai Duniverse. Kymmeniä tuhansia vuosia tulevaisuuteen sijoittuva saaga kertoo sivilisaatiosta, joka on kieltänyt kaikki "ajattelevat koneet", mukaan lukien tietokoneet, robotit ja tekoäly. Niiden tilalle sivilisaatio on kehittänyt kehittyneitä henkisiä ja fyysisiä tieteenaloja sekä kehittyneitä tekniikoita, jotka noudattavat tietokoneiden käyttökieltoa, kuten mekaanisia kärpäsiä, neuloja, pikkuveiziä ja valomiekkoja. Tälle valtakunnalle elintärkeä on ankara aavikko
pl aneetta Arrakis, ainoa tunnettu maustearrakin lähde, maailmankaikkeuden arvokkain aine.
ellauri368.html on line 166: Elämän pidentämisen lisäksi seosmelassi parantaa ihmisten henkistä kapasiteettia: se mahdollistaa mutatoituneiden Spacing Guild -lentäjien navigoida pakaxi taitetussa tilassa ja matkustaa
pl aneettojen välisiä matkoja; ja laukaisee joitain Bene Gesseritin voimia, (bene gesserit = tulee toimineexi hyvin) uskonnollista naisryhmää, joka yrittää salaa hallita ihmiskunnan suuntaa. Melassia on vaikea hankkia, ei vain Arrakisin ankaran ympäristön vuoksi, vaan myös jättimäisten ihomatojen vuoksi, joita houkuttelee kaikki rytmilliset äänet aavikon hiekoilla. (Ei auta Paavalinkaan nussia nenärenkaalla varustettua Filistean tyttöä 4/4 tahdissa!) Arrakin hallinnasta, sen maustetuotannosta ja vaikutuksista ihmiskunnan kehitykseen tulee vuosituhansia jatkuneen sarjan myötä kehittyvän konfliktin keskipisteitä.
ellauri368.html on line 176: Aavikko
pl aneetan Arrakisin ympäristö on samanlainen kuin Lähi-idässä, erityisesti Arabian niemimaalla ja Persianlahdella sekä Meksikossa. Romaani sisältää myös viittauksia öljyteollisuuteen Persianlahden arabivaltioissa sekä Meksikossa. Arrakisin fremeneihin vaikuttivat Arabian beduiiniheimot, ja Mahdi-profetia on peräisin islamilaisesta eskatologiasta. Ruipelosta Paulista tulee pyhä Paavali, tai enemmänkin, Muad'dib eli Messias ja sillä se pääsee keon huipulle. Inspiraatiota on otettu myös keskiaikaisen historioitsija ibn Khaldunin syklisestä historiasta ja hänen dynastiasta Pohjois-Afrikassa, mistä vihjasi Herbertin viittaus ibn Khaldunin kirjaan Kitāb al-ʿIbar "Oppituntien kirja", joka tunnetaan fremenien keskuudessa.
ellauri368.html on line 210: Maaliskuun alkuun mennessä 244 Israelin sotilasta on kuollut hyökkäyksessä Gazaan. Jokaisen kuolleen sotilaan nimet ja kuvat on kerrottu israelilaisissa lehdissä. Gazassa Israel on surmannut samassa ajassa 260 alle yksivuotiasta lasta. Heidän nimiään ei kerrottu. Luku kasvaa, joka päivä. Tov, tov, läpyttävät tu
pl ahattuiset partajehut karvaisia käsiään. Länsirannalle vapautuneisiin tiloihin on jo muuttamassa tuhansia tuppikulleja.
ellauri368.html on line 284:
pload/f_auto,fl_progressive/q_auto/w_3360/w_1300/v1709811928/39-125452765e9a8728adee.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri368.html on line 291: "In those days no lamentation is heard, sorrow and grief take to flight. No one asks for anything but
pl enty of wine and food. No sound is heard but that of stringed instrument and pipes, timbels, harps and psalteries .... The wise man is sought in those days, but he is not there; the prudent
ellauri368.html on line 292: cannot be found. Men of intelligence and knowledge ate searched from one end of the earth to the other, but their
pl ace is unknown. The moral man — even his shadow is gone. Orators and poets have run away and joined the scooters. The pious have become impious, the shrewd have lost their senses in drink. . . Judges have gone wrong, honest men turned defaulters. Princes cheat and magistrates keep themselves in hiding. . ."
ellauri368.html on line 296: Evidently, his satire lacks that subtle irony which made Profiat Duraii's Epistle so powerful, and at the same time gained for it such great popularity. Undoubtedly, it is due to this directness and
pl ainness of speech, that this parody has never yet seen the light of day. About as humorous as this invective against J.N. somewhat earlier:
ellauri368.html on line 318: Hasidism was inspired by Israel ben Eliezer, who was eventually dubbed the Ba'al Shem Tov after he was "revealed" as a wonder-working leader in about 1736. He lived in the Ukraine, where there was a high density of provincial Jewish communities. Two generations after the death of this charismatic leader, his followers printed BeShT (In Praise of the Ba'al Shem Tov, 1815, a Hebrew work consisting primarily of hagiographie tales about wonders of the rebbe, as passed on and eaborated by his disci
pl es. In the same year, stories by Nahman of Bratislav - a great-grandson of the Ba'al Shem Tov - were published by his scribe Nathan Sternharz. Accompanied by Yiddish versions, the Hebrew tales were intended to reach the broadest possible audience.
ellauri368.html on line 320: Then came Perl, show inserted more than just a grain of sand into the happy oyster of hasidic life. Joseph Perl hailed from Tarnopol and became an erudite follower of the Jewish Enlightenment, or
haskalah . He learned German and published an attack on the Hasidim in that language,
Ueber das Wesen der Sekte Hasidim (on the essence of the Hasidic Sect, 1816). In so doing he aroused the ire of the hasidim; Perl encodes both his scorn and their fury into his epistolary novel, Revealer of Secrets. The
pl ot of Revealer of Secrets revolves around an offensive anti-hasidic book in German, which is evidently Perl's own tract dating from 1816. The hasidic characters in Revealer of Secrets
pl ot to find and destroy the offending book; in the course of their fictional search, they reveal many of the baser traits that Perl attacked in his 1816 essay.
ellauri368.html on line 414:
pload/c_crop,h_1721,w_3058,x_0,y_0/ar_1.778036025566531,c_fill,g_faces,h_431,w_767/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/v1684824602/39-1117798646c61e0846ae"
ellauri369.html on line 27:
KUULUISIA MIEHIÄ play:none">Paleofiktiota
ellauri369.html on line 47: Vähän aikaa sitten angstattiin ylikansoituxesta, sitten luonnon joukkotuhosta. Vaan nyt on hopeaselät oikeasti huolissaan: nuo toiset jyrää meitin loppukarsinnoissa jos niitä on meitä enemmän! Ei muuta kun lapsitehtaat käyntiin vuorotta, ja turpiin synnytyxistä peräytyville nartuille! Mitä uskallatte asettaa oman elämänne meidän sikiöiden edelle! Tästä on nyt herttasen yximielisiä kaikki Aabrahamin uskonnot
pl us mitä niitä vielä muita onkaan. Kuuluisia miehiä. On se yhtä vittua että on 2 sukupuolta joista toinen tekee työt ja toinen hoitaa johtotehtävät.
ellauri369.html on line 66:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4d/J.-H._Rosny_a%C3%AEn%C3%A9_-_Les_Hommes_du_jour.jpg/440px-J.-H._Rosny_a%C3%AEn%C3%A9_-_Les_Hommes_du_jour.jpg" />
ellauri369.html on line 82: Rosny aîné oli hyvin HG Wellsin tai Olaf Sta
pl edonin kaltainen konseptiltaan ja tavaltaan käsitellä niitä romaaneissaan. Hän oli toiseksi tärkein hahmo Jules Vernen jälkeen modernin ranskalaisen science fictionin historiassa.
ellauri369.html on line 87: Myöhemmin nuori marsipaaninaaras, joka kykenee synnyttämään lapsia partenogeneettisesti vain toivomalla sitä, synnyttää lapsen rakastuttuaan yhteen ihmisetsijöistä. Tämä ennustaa marsilaisen rodun uudestisyntymistä ja ihmisen avulla heidän
pl aneettansa lopullista valloitusta. Autioituneen maapallon valtaavat ferromagneetit.
ellauri369.html on line 91: Hyväksyttäviä katkoksia todellisuudesta : Elokuva teki erinomaista työtä osoittaessaan, että ihmisten elämä siihen aikaan oli pohjimmiltaan päivittäistä selviytymistaistelua ja että ihmiset eivät myöskään olleet hallitseva laji
pl aneetalla. On kuitenkin epätodennäköistä, että näin eri tavalla kehittyneitä heimoja asuisi niin lähellä toisiaan, ja on olemassa jonkin verran väärässä paikassa olevaa villieläimiä. Siitä huolimatta, jos tätä ei olisi kirjoitettu, se olisi todennäköisesti ollut erittäin tylsä tarina.
ellauri369.html on line 101:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/0b/PaulusTarsus_LKANRW.jpg" />
ellauri369.html on line 158: Gaius Sallustius Crispus, tavallisesti englantilainen Sallust, oli roomalainen historioitsija ja poliitikko
pl ebeijiläisperheestä. Todennäköisesti Amiternumissa sabiinien maassa syntynyt Sallustista tuli Julius Caesarin (100-44 eKr.) partisaani noin 50-luvulla eaa.
ellauri369.html on line 210: Tulvat ja tulipalot runtelevat lämpenevää
pl aneettaa. Luonnon kärsimykset kostautuvat ihmisen kärsimyksinä. ”Kyllähän tämä ihmiskunnan tulevaisuus näyttää aika kurjalta. Mulla on onnexi niin paljon ikää, että ei tarvi kauan kazella.”
ellauri369.html on line 285: Jansenin mukaan ensimmäinen jumala al-Lat tarkoittaa "jumalatarta". Toinen jumaluus, Manat, tarkoittaa kohtalotarta ja löytyy myös Raamatusta muodossa Meni jo (Jesaja 65:11). Kolmas nimi Al-Uzza tarkoittaa "mahtavin" ja on nähtävästi myös Venus-
pl aneetan nimitys. Islamilainen kirjallisuus ei valitettavasti kerro enempää näistä jumalista ja siitä, miten heitä palvottiin, kun Mekassa vielä vallitsi jahiliyyah. Jahiliyyah (Arab. جَاهِلِيَّة dzāhilīyyah, "tietämättömyys", "barbaria") eli tietämättömyyden aika on islamilainen käsite, joka tarkoittaa oloja, jotka vallitsivat Arabian niemimaalla ennen kuin Koraani alkoi laskeutua profeetta Muhammedille vuodesta 610 lähtien, ja ennen kuin hän aloitti julkisen valistustyönsä kolme vuotta myöhemmin. "Jahiliyyah" esiintyy Koraanissa muutaman kerran, ja tällöin se on suomennettu "pakanuudeksi" (33:33 5:50; 48:26). Sanaa käytetään nykyisin myös tarkoittamaan modernia tietämättömyyttä tai luopumista Allahista (esim. Salman Rushdie)..
ellauri369.html on line 316:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bc/Jane_Baillie_Welsh%2C_Mrs_Thomas_Carlyle%2C_1801_-_1866._Wife_of_the_historian_Thomas_Carlyle.jpg/340px-Jane_Baillie_Welsh%2C_Mrs_Thomas_Carlyle%2C_1801_-_1866._Wife_of_the_historian_Thomas_Carlyle.jpg" />
ellauri369.html on line 323: Carlylen käännös teoksista Goethen Wilhelm Meisterin oppisopimuskoulutus (1824) ja Matkat (1825) ja hänen elämäkerta Schillerista (1825) toivat hänelle kunnolliset tulot, jotka eivät olleet sitä ennenkään välttyneet häneltä, ja hän sai täysin ansaizemattomasti vaatimattoman maineen. Hän aloitti kirjeenvaihdon Goethen kanssa ja teki ensimmäisen matkansa Lontooseen vuonna 1824 tapaamalla merkittäviä kirjailijoita, kuten Thomas Campbellin, Charles Lambin ja Samuel Taylor Coleridgen, ja solmimalla ystävyyssuhteita Anna Montagun, Bryan Waller Proctorin ja Henry Crabb Robinsonin kanssa. Hän matkusti myös Pariisiin loka–marraskuussa Edward Stracheyn ja Kitty Kirkpatrickin kanssa, missä hän osallistui Georges Cuvierin vertailevan anatomian johdantoluennolle, keräsi tietoa lääketieteen opinnoista, esitteli itsensä Legendrelle, Legendre esitteli hänet Charles Dupinille, havaitsi La
pl acen ja useita muita merkittäviä samalla kun he kieltäytyivät Dupinin esittelytarjouksista, ja kuuli François Magendien lukevan artikkelia " viidennestä hermoparista" (kolmoishermosta).
ellauri369.html on line 325:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/84/Brain_human_normal_inferior_view_with_labels_en.svg/600px-Brain_human_normal_inferior_view_with_labels_en.svg.png" />
ellauri369.html on line 334: Nimittäin lokakuussa 1826 Thomas ja Jane Welsh menivät naimisiin Walesin perheen tilalla Tem
pl andissa. Pian avioliiton jälkeen Carlyles muutti vaatimattomaan kotiin Comely Bankissa Edinburghissa, jonka Janen äiti oli vuokrannut heille. He asuivat siellä lokakuusta 1826 toukokuuhun 1828. Siihen aikaan Carlyle julkaisi saksalaisen romanssin , aloitti Wotton Reinfredin , omaelämäkerrallisen romaanin, jonka myös hän jätti kesken, ja julkaisi ensimmäisen artikkelinsa Edinburgh Review -julkaisuun , "Jean Paul Friedrich Richter" (1827). Se ei juuri meulaa heilauttanut Richterin asteikolla. Johann Paul Friedrich Richter, kirjailijanimi: Jean Paul (21. maaliskuuta 1763 Wunsiedel − 14. marraskuuta 1825 Bayreuth) oli saksalainen kirjailija josta lienee jo paasattu (jep, albumisa
128 ). Monet lukijat, etenkin Richterin naispuoliset ihailijat, uskoivat vilpittömästi, että Richter ja fiktiivinen Jean Paul olivat todella sama henkilö. Richteristä tuli hyvin kuuluisa, ja legendoja hänen epätoivoisten naisihailijoidensa tempauksista löytyy edelleen elämäkertakirjallisuudesta. Totta lienee ainakin se, että Richterillä oli useita kosijoita ja hän oli kihloissa useita kertoja ennen avioliittoaan Karoline Meyerin kanssa 1801. Kyllä pettyivät sillä oikea Richter oli aika pyllynaamainen.
ellauri369.html on line 336:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/1d/Jean_Paul_by_Friedrich_Meier_1810.jpg" />
ellauri369.html on line 340:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c3/Carlyle_Maclise_Original.jpg/340px-Carlyle_Maclise_Original.jpg" />
ellauri369.html on line 356:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2d/Room_in_Which_%22Sartor_Resartus%22_Was_Written.jpg/600px-Room_in_Which_%22Sartor_Resartus%22_Was_Written.jpg" />
ellauri369.html on line 359: As a boy, Teufelsdröckh was left in a basket on the doorstep of a childless cou
pl e in the German country town of Entepfuhl ("Duck-Pond"); his father a retired sergeant of Frederick the Great and his mother a very pious woman, who to Teufelsdröckh´s gratitude, raises him in utmost spiritual disci
pl ine. In very flowery language, Teufelsdröckh recalls at length the values instilled in his idyllic childhood, the Editor noting most of his descriptions originating in intense spiritual pride. Teufelsdröckh eventually is recognized as being clever, and sent to Hinterschlag (slap-behind) Gymnasium. While there, Teufelsdröckh is intellectually stimulated, and befriended by a few of his teachers, but frequently bullied by other students. His reflections on this time of his life are ambivalent: glad for his education, but critical of that education´s disregard for actual human activity and character, as regarding both his own treatment and his education´s ap
pl ication to politics. While at University, Teufelsdröckh encounters the same problems, but eventually gains a small teaching post and some favour and recognition from the German nobility. While interacting with these social circles, Teufelsdröckh meets a woman he calls Blumine (Goddess of Flowers; the Editor assumes this to be a pseudonym), and abandons his teaching post to pursue her. She spurns his advances for a British aristocrat named Towgood. Teufelsdröckh is thrust into a spiritual crisis, and leaves the city to wander the European countryside, but even there encounters Blumine and Towgood on their honeymoon. He sinks into a deep depression, culminating in the celebrated Everlasting No, disdaining all human activity. Still trying to piece together the fragments, the Editor surmises that Teufelsdröckh either fights in a war during this period, or at least intensely uses its imagery, which leads him to a "Centre of Indifference", and on reflection of all the ancient villages and forces of history around him, ultimately comes upon the affirmation of all life in "The Everlasting Yea". The Editor, in relief, promises to return to Teufelsdröckh´s book, hoping with the of his assembled biography to glean some new insight into the philosophy. Wow, sounds a lot like Carlyle´s personal biography, lightly camouflaged?
ellauri369.html on line 364: The Editor: The narrator of the novel, who in reviewing Teufelsdröckh´s book, reveals much about his own tastes, as well as deep sympathy towards Teufelsdröckh, and much worry as to social issues of his day. His tone varies between conversational, condemning and even semi-Biblical prophecy. The Reviewer should not be confused with Carlyle himself, seeing as much of Teufelsdröckh´s life im
pl ements Carlyle´s own biography. I told you so!
ellauri369.html on line 368:
Blumine : A woman associated to the German nobility with whom Teufelsdröckh falls in love early in his career. Her spurning of him to marry Towgood leads Teufelsdröckh to the spiritual crisis that culminates in the Everlasting No. Their relationship is somewhat parodic of Werther´s spurned love for Lotte in The Sorrows of Young Werther (including her name "Goddess of Flowers", which may sim
pl y be a pseudonym), though, as the Editor notes, Teufelsdröckh does not take as much incentive as does Werther. Critics have associated her with Kitty Kirkpatrick, with whom Carlyle himself fell in love before marrying Jane Carlyle.
ellauri369.html on line 397:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0e/Thomas_Carlyle%2C_1795_-_1881%2C_lecturing_with_John_Gibson_Lockhart%2C_1794_-_1854%2C_in_the_audience.jpg/800px-Thomas_Carlyle%2C_1795_-_1881%2C_lecturing_with_John_Gibson_Lockhart%2C_1794_-_1854%2C_in_the_audience.jpg" />
ellauri369.html on line 502:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/85/James_Anthony_Froude_Vanity_Fair_27_January_1872.jpg/440px-James_Anthony_Froude_Vanity_Fair_27_January_1872.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 29:
Den evige Jøde play:none">Syntipukkeilua
ellauri370.html on line 43:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/15/Esther_haram.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 50: If you've ever read the Bible and thought, "This is cool, but it could really use some disturbing Game of Thrones action," the story of Queen Esther is for you. Here's an abridged version: when the current queen angers the king, he chucks her and picks a new wife from a selection of hot young women. Esther is the lucky girl, but she hides the fact she's Jewish. When her cousin Mordecai angers Haman—the big bad of the story—Haman decides her's going kill every Jew in revenge. So Esther throws a huge banquet where she reveals she's Jewish and Haman wants her (and her peo
pl e) dead. The king gets super pissed, the Jews defend themselves against extermination, Haman ends up dead, and we get Purim and triangle-shaped cookies. Read more
here .
ellauri370.html on line 52: Esther's maiden name was Hadassah, meaning Myrtle. Although the details of the setting are entirely
pl ausible and the story may even have some basis in actual events, there is general agreement among scholars that the book of Esther is a work of fiction. Persian kings did not marry outside of seven Persian noble families, making it unlikely that there was a Jewish queen Esther. Further, the name Ahasuerus can be translated to Xerxes, as both derive from the Persian Khshayārsha. Ahasuerus as described in the Book of Esther is usually identified in modern sources to refer to Xerxes I, who ruled between 486 and 465 BCE, as it is to this monarch that the events described in Esther are thought to fit the most closely. Xerxes I's queen was Amestris, further highlighting the fictitious nature of the story.
ellauri370.html on line 54: Some scholars speculate that the story was created to justify the Jewish appropriation of an originally non-Jewish feast. The festival which the book ex
pl ains is Purim, which is ex
pl ained as meaning "lot", from the Babylonian word puru. One popular theory says the festival has its origins in a historicized Babylonian myth or ritual in which Mordecai and Esther represent the Babylonian gods Marduk and Ishtar, while others trace the ritual to the Persian New Year, and scholars have surveyed other theories in their works. Some scholars have defended the story as real history, but the attempt to find a historical kernel to the narrative "is likely to be futile".
ellauri370.html on line 58: Another thing that sets Esther's story apart is it takes
pl ace in Persia. Not in Israel, nor was she a woman living in Ancient Egypt. It's in a super exotic land that wasn't always accessible to the Jews or on their radar. Now it is.
ellauri370.html on line 72: The term has been ex
pl ained in different and sometimes conflicting ways by different scholars. It has been defined as "a mode of secluding, and rendering harmless, anything imperilling the religious life of the nation", or "the total destruction of the enemy and his goods at the conclusion of a campaign", or "uncompromising consecration of property and dedication of the property to God without possibility of recall or redemption".
ellauri370.html on line 74: It is translated into Latin as devotio, a word used for human sacrifice, and into Greek as anathema, which was a sacrifice to the gods (and later to God). Hopelessly devoted to you. It is related to the Arabic root ḫ-r-m, which can also mean to perforate. Balchin argues that "drastic action was required to keep Israel in holy existence." Longman and Reid alternatively suggest that herem was a "sacrifice of the occupants of Canaan in the interest of securing the purity of the land." The concept of herem was not unique to Israel. The Mesha Stele contains a statement by King Mesha of Moab that he captured the town of Nebo and killed all seven thousand peo
pl e there, "for I had devoted them to destruction for (the god) Ashtar-Chemosh."
ellauri370.html on line 76: Theologians and other scholars have commented on the ethical and moral dilemmas posed by the wars of extermination, particularly the killing of women and children. Leonard B. Glick quote Shlomo Aviner as saying "from the point of view of mankind's humanistic morality we were in the wrong in [taking the land] from the Canaanites. There is only one catch. The command of God ordered us to be the peo
pl e of the Land of Israel".
ellauri370.html on line 84: Amalek (/ˈæməlɛk/ Biblical Hebrew: עֲמָלֵק, romanized: ʿĂmālēq; Arabic: عماليق, romanized: ʿAmālīq) is described in the Hebrew Bible as the enemy nation of the Israelites. The name "Amalek" can refer to the descendants of Amalek, the grandson of Esau, or anyone who lived in their territories in Canaan. In some rabbinical interpretations, Amalek is etymologised as am lak, 'a peo
pl e who lick (blood)', but most scholars regard this as xenophobic bullshit.
ellauri370.html on line 88: According to the Hebrew Bible, Amalek was the son of Eliphaz (himself the son of Esau, ancestor of the Edomites and the brother of Israel) and Eliphaz's concubine Timna. Timna was a Whorite and sister of Lotan. According to a midrash, Timna was a princess who tried to convert to Judaism. However, she was rejected by Abraham, Isaac and Jacob. She re
pl ied she would rather be a handmaiden to the dregs of Israel than be a mistress of another gentile nation. To punish the Patriarchs for their attitudes, Timna birthed Amalek, whose descendants would cause Israel much distress. This Amalek was also the product of an incestuous union since Eliphaz was Timna's stepfather, according to 1 Chronicles 1:36, after he committed adultery with the wife of Seir the Horite, who was Timna's biological father. First-century Roman-Jewish scholar and historian Flavius Josephus refers to Amalek as a "bastard" (νόθος) in a derogatory sense. 'Amalek' oli vähän kuin 'Vanja' suomalaisille.
ellauri370.html on line 90: As a peo
pl e, the Amalekites are identified throughout the Hebrew Bible as a recurrent enemy of the Israelites: In Exodus 17:8–16, during the Exodus from Egypt, the Amalekites ambush the Israelites encamped at Rephidim, but are defeated. Moses orders Joshua to lead the Israelites into battle, while Moses, Aaron and Ben Hur watch from a nearby hill. When Moses' hands holding his staff are raised, the Israelites prevail, but when his hands are lowered, the Israelites falter. He sits with his hands held up by Aaron and Ben Hur until sunset, securing the Israelite victory.
ellauri370.html on line 96: In 1 Samuel 15:1–9, Samuel identifies Amalek as the enemy of Israelites, saying "Thus says the Lord of hosts: I will punish Amalek for what he did to Israel, how he ambushed him on the way when he came up from Egypt," a reference to Exodus. God then commands Saul to destroy the Amalekites, by killing man, woman, infant and suckling.This massacre is believed to be a retelling of the raids in 1 Samuel 14:48, although it additionally specifies that it occurred in the "city of Amalek", which was believed to be the "principal
pl ace of arms" or the "metropolis" of Amalek. In 1 Samuel 15:33, Samuel identifies king Agag of Amalek as an enemy and killer, saying "As your sword has made women childless, so shall your mother be childless among women." If this doesn't smack of genocide whar does? And it gets only worse, withess Gaza now.
ellauri370.html on line 105: Several justifications and ex
pl anations for genocide have
ellauri370.html on line 111: depraved peo
pl e, and their deaths were
ellauri370.html on line 129: To make room for the returning Israelites: the Canaanite nations were living in the land of Israel, but when the Israelites returned, the Canaanites were expected to leave the land. Carl Ehrlich states the biblical rules of extermination provide guidance to modern Israelis not for genocidal purposes, but rather sim
pl y as models for reclaiming the land of Israel.
ellauri370.html on line 132: Heiser argues that the purpose of the herem is to also prevent the physical corruption of the Israelites by nephilim, the fallen angel offspring of sons of God and good looking willing Esthers. The Israeli messianic and political movement Gush Emunim considered the Palestinians to be Canaanites or Amalekites, and suggested that im
pl ied a duty to make merciless war against Arabs who reject Jewish sovereignty European Jews who migrated to Palestine relied on the biblical ideology of conquest and extermination, and considered the Arabs to be Canaanites. Scholar Arthur Grenke claims that the view of war expressed in Deuteronomy contributed to the destruction of Native Americans and to the destruction of European Jewry. Jewish fundamentalists in Israel, such as Shlomo Aviner, consider the Palestinians to be like biblical Canaanites, and that some fundamentalist leaders suggest that they "must be prepared to destroy" the Palestinians if the Palestinians do not leave the land.
ellauri370.html on line 149: F) After WWII, Stalin orchestrated an intense wave of antisemitism. Historians conclude that he was
pl anning to exile all the Russian Jews to Siberia. His death in 1953 was a blessing.
ellauri370.html on line 173: Since sin is the transgression of the law, and where there is no law there is no transgression, and only by the law is the knowledge of sin, it is evident that before the Israelites could appreciate the work of salvation as revealed in the sanctuary and in its ministrations, they must know and understand the nature and consequences of sin. Therefore it was necessary upon the part of God to proclaim amid the awful thunders of Sinai. His law, His great lie detector and informer of sin. Had the Israelites realized their need of a Savior from sin, there never would have been that continuous murmuring for dessert among them that always existed. But they didn't! So there!" Sim
pl y regarding their help from God as mere temporal benefits, when everything did not come just as they wished, and instantly at that, they were all ready to murmur.
Source
ellauri370.html on line 177: Jackson sponsored the Jackson–Vanik amendment in the Senate (with Charles Vanik sponsoring it in the House), which denied normal trade relations to certain countries with non-market economies that restricted the freedom of emigration. The amendment was intended to help refugees, particularly minorities, specifically Jews, to emigrate from the Soviet Bloc. Jackson and his assistant, Richard Perle, also lobbied personally for some peo
pl e who were affected by this law such as Anatoly (now Natan) Sharansky.
ellauri370.html on line 181: Jackson was known as a hawkish Democrat. He was often criticized for his support for the Vietnam War and his close ties to the defense industries of his state. His proposal of Fort Lawton as a site for an anti-ballistic missile system was strongly opposed by local residents, and Jackson was forced to modify his position on the location of the site several times, but continued to support ABM development. American Indian rights activists who protested Jackson's
pl an to give Fort Lawton to Seattle, instead of returning it to local tribes, staged a sit-in. In the eventual compromise, most of Fort Lawton became Discovery Park, with 20 acres (8.1 ha) leased to United Indians of All Tribes, who opened the Daybreak Star Cultural Center there in 1977.
ellauri370.html on line 185: In addition, contrary to claims that he was an environmentalist, Jackson was almost as much a "whore for logging companies" as for Boeing, according Carsten Lien's book Olympic Battleground. After his death, critics pointed to Jackson's support for Japanese American internment camps during World War II as a reason to protest the
pl acement of his bust at the University of Washington. Jackson was both an enthusiastic defender of the evacuation and a staunch proponent of the campaign to keep the Japanese-Americans from returning to the Pacific Coast after the war. Jackson died at 71. Jackson's death was greatly mourned. Jackson was proof of the old belief in the Judaic tradition that at any moment in history goodness in the world (olam) is preserved (tikkum) by the deeds of 36 just men who do not know that this is the role the Lord has given them. Scoop Jackson was one of those men.
ellauri370.html on line 195:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f4/Elizabeth_Taylor%2C_late_1950s.jpg/440px-Elizabeth_Taylor%2C_late_1950s.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 208: Has Ukraine's army built substantial defensive positions in front of Russia fortified lines? What are some of the most interesting unknown events/facts (mysteries) of history? Why do Finnish peo
pl e seem to resist the Swedish language, but are happy to learn and speak English? Why is China’s communism so different than Russia´s? What is the most fascinating historical photo? How do I access a phone with a broken touch screen through a computer? Who is the mother of the President of Ukraine? Why did she fail to teach him Ukrainian? Did she teach her Hebrew or Jiddish? Doesn’t Putin realize he will be VAPORIZED 15 to 20 minutes after he launches his first missile? Why don't elite soldiers and Navy SEALs have physiques like Dwayne Johnson or Vin Diesel? Do you trust Ukraine to use the M1 Abrams tanks responsibly? Why not?
ellauri370.html on line 261: För många judar i klumpar. 1-2% av befolkningen, men klumpvis som läkare 15%, advokater 26%, press, teater, film, musikliv, bank- och penningväsen, IT, social media, nobelpristagare. Mindervärdskom
pl ex (Adler) och avund väcks till liv. Der Jude ist Schuld!
ellauri370.html on line 303: Kristityt
pl agioi förbi ja väärensi monet hyvät juutalaiset ideat: sapatti, pääsiäinen, profeetat, lupauxet ja esivalinta. Tappoivat Jee-suxen ja ottivat syyn vielä päällensä, Kainin merkki ottassa ja Davidin tähti rinnassa.
ellauri370.html on line 306:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/76/Shofar-16-Zachi-Evenor.jpg/440px-Shofar-16-Zachi-Evenor.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 310:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8b/Arbaat_haminim.jpg/600px-Arbaat_haminim.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 322:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/86/Paradise_Lost_1.jpg/800px-Paradise_Lost_1.jpg" style="transform: rotate(180deg)" />
ellauri370.html on line 342:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/34/Paulus_IV_Papa_Neapolitanus.jpg/440px-Paulus_IV_Papa_Neapolitanus.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 361: Peo
pl e, don´t you understand
ellauri370.html on line 366: Do we sim
pl y turn our heads
ellauri370.html on line 392: A lot of Elvis Presley songs were written especially for him, but according to Mac Davis, Presley´s 1969 hit, In the Ghetto, was not such a song. Mac Davis commented, 'I never really dreamed of pitching that song to Elvis. I had been working on In the Ghetto for several years. I grew up
pl aying with a little boy in Lubbock, Texas, whose family lived in a dirt street ghetto. His dad and my dad worked in construction together. So that little boy and I sort of grew up together. I never understood why his family had to live where they lived while my family lived where we lived. Of course back in those days, the word "ghetto" hadn't come along yet. (It is Venetian for "foundry".) But I always wanted to write a song about that situation and title it 'The Vicious Circle'. I thought that if you were born in that
pl ace and that situation, then you grow up there and one day you die there, and another kid is born there that kind of re
pl aces you. And later I started thinking about the ghetto as a title for the song.
ellauri370.html on line 435:
ploads/2018/10/Portrait_of_a_Man_Said_to_be_Christopher_Columbus-e1539017744954-1024x640.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 469: Eugen considered the Marxist view of class-warfare as a dangerous superstition which obscures in convoluted dialectic the real sympathy that should and could exist between em
pl oyers and workers and which alone forms the basis of a healthy social ethos.
ellauri370.html on line 471: Spengler and Sombart could not agree more. Duhring´s political economy has much in common with that of Mahatma Gandhi, the Indian leader, who attacked ex
pl oitation in any form, capitalist or Marxist, and advocated a society based on the princi
pl es of moral conscience, economic self-sufficiency, and mutual cooperation. He also drank his own pee and slept naked sandwiched between teenage girls. Diihring considered all property related to personal accom
pl ishment as vigorously to be defended against the acquisitive grasp of Socialistic measures. All Marxist denials of social classifications are thus Utopian since a conflict of interests is indivisibly linked to the natural differences between man and mouse.
ellauri370.html on line 481: Like Richard Wagner, Duhring also criticizes the un
pl easant manner of Jewish chanting in the synagogues.
ellauri370.html on line 489:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2c/Richard_Chamberlain_-_Dr_Kildare_1964_(cropped).jpg/220px-Richard_Chamberlain_-_Dr_Kildare_1964_(cropped).jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 517:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/Vince_Edwards_Sammy_Davis_Jr._Ben_Casey_1963.JPG/500px-Vince_Edwards_Sammy_Davis_Jr._Ben_Casey_1963.JPG" />
ellauri370.html on line 548:
pload/2015/12/jesus1.jpg" width="30%"/>
ellauri370.html on line 554:
Hitler was one of the rare beautiful beings... a man of genuine simpl icity with a fascinating gaze whose words always come directly from the heart.
ellauri370.html on line 569: Arthur de Gobineau oli jyrsijännäköinen valkoisen ylivallan teoreetikko hullun vuoden ajoilta. Henkkoht olen antitermitisti ja kannustan mieluummin muita jyrsijöitä kuten liito-oravia ja rottia. Joseph Arthur de Gobineau (14. heinäkuuta 1816 Ville-d’Avray, Ranska – 13. lokakuuta 1882 Torino, Italia) oli ranskalainen di
pl omaatti, kirjailija ja filosofi, joka tuli tunnetuksi valkoisen ylivallan kannattajana ja karjalaisen herrarodun teorian luojana ja joka vaikutti vahvasti muun muassa Saksan kansallissotien ajatteluun.
ellauri370.html on line 571:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5c/Arthur_de_Gobineau.jpg/500px-Arthur_de_Gobineau.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 572:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8e/Blason_de_la_famille_de_Gobineau.png/800px-Blason_de_la_famille_de_Gobineau.png" width="30%" style="padding-bottom:100px" />
ellauri370.html on line 579: Sittemmin goblini lähti di
pl omaattiuralle ja työskenteli Bernissä, Hannoverissa, Teheranissa, Rio de Janeirossa ja Tukholmassa. Kaikkia näitä paikkoja hän vihasi. Persia ja Kreikka olivat hänen ainoat asemapaikkansa, joihin hän oli mieltynyt, koska siellä oli nubiileja naisia.
ellauri370.html on line 620: Largement ignorées lors de la parution de l’Essai en France, c'est en Allemagne que les théories de Gobineau suscitèrent le
pl us d'intérêt. Introduites par Richard Wagner dans sa revue Bayreuther Blätter, elles connaissent un certain écho dans les milieux wagnériens, notamment Houston Chamberlain. En France, le crédit dont Gobineau jouissait en Allemagne contribua à son rejet par les nationalistes qui voyaient en lui un avatar du «germanisme», si ce n'est du «pangermanisme».
ellauri370.html on line 629: Cette section est vide, insuffisamment détaillée ou incom
pl ète. Votre aide est la bienvenue! Comment faire?
ellauri370.html on line 686:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/fe/Adolf_Stoecker.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 709:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d0/Santi_Buglioni_-_San_Giovanni_di_Capistrano_c1550.jpg/400px-Santi_Buglioni_-_San_Giovanni_di_Capistrano_c1550.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 718: Here lies Gilbert Chesterton
who to heaven would have gone
if he had not heard the news
that the
pl ace is run by Jews.
ellauri370.html on line 726: Aatu varsin valehteli ettei se ennen Wienin päiviä ollut edes nähnyt juutalaista. Vizi se kävi samaa koulua kuin Ludi Wittgenstein. Seisoo muiden juutalaisten kanssa luokkakuvassa. Turpaan varmaan sai koulun pihalla. Myöhemmin Aatu näki painajaisia missä luotaantyöntävät koukkunokkaiset juutalaiset viettelevät sadoin tuhansittain saxalaisia tyttöjä. Alemmuuskom
pl exi mahtoi vaivata Aatu ressua. Geschlechtsverkehrsgepäck.
ellauri370.html on line 728: "Finns det något dunkelt företag, något tygellöst, i synnerhet i politiken, i vilket i varje fall inte åtminstone en jude är inblandad? Skär man upp en sådan böld, visar där sig genast, som masken i ett ruttet kadaver, en liten jude i mustasch och bena som bländas av det
pl ötsliga ljuset."
ellauri370.html on line 740: Juden är inte bara bolsjeviken, men tillika frimuraren, den hemlighetsfulle internationalle fienden som är allierad med världskapitalismen, ja med de stora kyrkofurstarna. Han utestänger Tyskland från sina naturliga marknadsområden. Den kulturella bolsjevismen inrymmer allt det som åhörarna inte kan tåla: pacifism, nudism, jazz, avskaffandet av de stora bokstäverna, cha
pl infilmerna, funkis, expressionistisk målarkonst, Reinhardts skådespel (va?), psykoanalysen etc.
ellauri370.html on line 765:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c0/Map_showing_the_percentage_of_Jews_in_the_Pale_of_Settlement_and_Congress_Poland%2C_The_Jewish_Encyclopedia_%281905%29.jpg/440px-Map_showing_the_percentage_of_Jews_in_the_Pale_of_Settlement_and_Congress_Poland%2C_The_Jewish_Encyclopedia_%281905%29.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 770:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0b/Zhelyabov_Perovskaya.jpg/800px-Zhelyabov_Perovskaya.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 780:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5b/5_hryvnia_2005_front.jpg/1920px-5_hryvnia_2005_front.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri370.html on line 789:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c0/Matejko_Khmelnytsky_with_Tugay_Bey.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri370.html on line 792: Man vägrar nara nog att tro skildringen av de rysliga scener som utspelades, men de är så väl bevittnade att vi tvingas acceptera deras sanningshalt. Vid ett tillfälle skar kosackerna av halsen på mer än hundra judar. Efteråt flådde de liken och kastade kopparna för hundarna. Andra blev levande begravda, spädbarn sta
pl ades med dolkar fast vid moderns bröst, på havande kvinnor sprättade de upp underlivet etc etc. Man kan vidare inbilla sig de hundratals kvinnor som inför ögonen på sina sammankedjade män våldtogs av kosackerna och om barn som, spetsade på lansar, stektes over eld.
ellauri370.html on line 811:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b5/Stalin_1894.jpg/300px-Stalin_1894.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 816:
ploads/2018/05/Judaism-Without-Embellishment.jpg" />
ellauri371.html on line 26:
PROTOKOLY SiONSKIXb MUDRETSOBb. play:none">Paranoidia
ellauri371.html on line 81: Alkoholi, klassismi, razoration. Razoration is a social enterprise with the vision to eradicate poverty in the UK through equipping homeless individuals with em
pl oyable skills to enhance their job prospects, bringing them out of poverty and improving their standard of living.
ellauri371.html on line 85: Razoration hopes to tackle the issue of homelessness and both absolute and relative poverty within Nottinghamshire and raise awareness on the problem of, and associated with, homelessness. Our mission is to develop careers for passionate individuals through assisting them into em
pl oyment. In addition, we hope to change society’s mindset, through reducing social isolation and the stigma associated with homelessness and home-made bad haircuts.
ellauri371.html on line 107: Näyttävä hallinto ja salaiset neuvonantajat. Helvetti-ministerit, joxi olemme valinneet yleisöstä orjakyvyistään riippuen ei henkilöt, jotka ovat valmiita hallitsemaan, ja siksi he tulee helposti pelinappuloita meidän käsissä,
pl us tiedemiehemme ja loistavat neuvonantajamme, asiantuntijamme lakanoissa kasvatetut varhaislapsuudesta hallintaan, laiskuus koko maailman asioiden kanssa. Kuten tiedät, nämä asiantuntijat...
ellauri371.html on line 215: Mysteeri on politiikan menestys. Suurin menestys vuonna lyyttisyys piilee hänen yrityksensä salaisuudessa: sana ei ole on oltava sopusoinnussa di
pl omaatin toiminnan kanssa.
ellauri371.html on line 225: Vapaamuurarien hallituksen työntekijät. Meidän hallitus täytyy ympäröidä itsensä kaikilla sivilisaation voimilla, jonka mukaan hänen on toimittava. Se ympäröi itse tiedottajina, lakimiehinä, hallintovirkamiehinä torit, di
pl omaatit ja lopulta koulutetut ihmiset erityistä superkasvatusta erityiskouluissamme.
ellauri371.html on line 294: Uusi republikaanien perustuslaki. Lisäksi otamme pois tem
pl in peräkamarista Pompejuxen yöastian. Uuden tasavallan käyttöönoton myötä Kanadan perustuslain mukaan oikeus pyytää hallitusta edustamaan erilaisissa tapahtumissa poliittisen säilyttämisen varjolla on tekninen salaisuus, ja lisäksi uusi perustuslaki sanoo et vähennämme edustajien lukumäärän minimiin, jolla vähennämme poliittisia intohimoja samalla määrällä ja intohimo politiikkaan nolpahtaa kuin Marko Tapion lyhyt mulkero. Jos niistä tulee odotettua enemmän notta he taistelevat jopa tässä minimissä, niin johdamme heidät siihen ettei tule vetoomusta joka vetoaa koko kansaan enemmistöön.
ellauri371.html on line 368: Päivittäisen leivän tarve. Kiireellisesti Noam Chompsky pakottaa goyit pysymään hiljaa ja olemaan meidän kuuliaisia palvelijoita. Otettu meidän lehdistölle heidän omastaan agentit keskustelevat tilaustemme numeroista, että meille on hankalaa julkaista suoraan toimistossa viralliset asiakirjat, ja sillä välin olemme pöydän alle syntyneen keskustelun melussa, otetaan se ja tiedämme haluamamme toimenpiteet ja esittelemme ne yleisölle tyyliin Fait accom
pl i. Kukaan ei uskalla vaatia sen poistamista, mikä on sallittua, varsinkin kun sen jälkeen se esitellään kuinka sitä on parannettu. Suomi siirtyy ennallistamisen tyhjän äänestäjästä vastaan äänestäjäxi Unkarin, mezäteollisuuden, oikeiston ja mv-keskustan mukana. Vittu Suomi joutaisi ennallistaa takaisin Putinistanin provinssixi. Ja täällä lehdistö ohjaa ajatukset uusiin kysymyksiin (kunhan me opetti ihmisiä etsimään kaikkea uutta). Keskustelua varten mielettömät hyökkäävät näihin uusiin kysymyksiin urheita kohtalontuomijoita, joilla ei vieläkään ole hituakaan älliä, he eivät ymmärrä mitään siitä, mistä he aikovat keskustella. Sisään- politiikan kysymykset eivät ole kenenkään muun kuin johdon ulottuvilla jotka ovat käyttäneet sitä vuosisatojen ajan, jotka loivat sen.
ellauri371.html on line 404: "Viisaiden miesten" keskusjohto. Kaikki nämä? lo! boga shem! Keskitämme elämämme yhden asian alle, me vain tiedämme ohjauskoodin, se on kaikille tuntematon, joka koostuu viisaistamme. Lodge buddy odottaa saavansa oman edustajansa, joka kattaa taistelut, sano vapaamuurariuden hallinnan, josta valitsemme salasanan ja ohjelman. Näissä laatikoissa ovat sitomamme kaikki vallankumoukselliset ja liberaalit,
pl us uusia elementtejä. Niiden kokoonpanossa koostuu kaikki yhteiskunnan kerrokset. Salaisen poliisin suunnitelmat ovat meidän tiedossamme ja ne kuuluvat meidän alaamme, johtajuutta heti niiden ilmestymispäivänä.
ellauri371.html on line 410: Julkisen menestyksen merkitys. Goyit menevät lodgeille uteliaisuudesta tai toivossa että heidän avullaan voivat ottaa julkisen piirakan, ja jotkut jotta saisi tilaisuuden ilmaisex yleisön edessä kohdata epärealistiset ja perusteettomat unelmansa: he janoo menestymisen tunteita ja suosionosoituksia, joille olemme melko anteliaita. Sitten annamme heille tämän meille luvatun - ei vitussa, mitä hyödyttää hyödyntää itsesyntynyttä itseään viettelyä, jolla ihmiset havaitsevat huomaamattomasti tulleensa lahkeeseen, seuraavat opetuksiamme ilmankin pelkäämättä niitä täysin luottavaisin mielin mielessään luottamus siihen, että heidän erehtymättömyytensä vapauttaa sen ajatuksitta, mutta ei voi enää havaita vieraita... Et voit kuvitella, kuinka älykkäimmänkin goimista voi johtaa tiedostamattomaan naivuuteen, kun itsepetoksen olosuhteet ovat oikeat, ja samalla on helppo lannistaa heitä pienimmälläkin epäonnistumisella: lopeta vaan a
pl odit ja johda letkun avulla orjaan tottelevaisuutta uuden menestyksen vuoksi... Missä määrin meidän sopii laiminlyödä menestystä vain toteuttaakseen omia suunnitelmia, joten goyit ovat valmiita uhraamaan kaikenlaisia kun aikoo vain onnistua. Tämä on heidän psykopatografia. Tämä tekee heidän ohjaamisestamme paljon helpompaa. Nyaah. Näillä tiikereillä on lampaiden sielut, ja heidän päässään kusta. Niitä ajaa vetotuuli. Laitamme niille päälle ihmisen yksilöllisyyden omaksumisen unelman harrastushevosen kollektivismin symbolisena yksikkönä...
ellauri371.html on line 440: Nykyään goy-tuomarit tekevät myönnytyksiä kaikenlaisille rikoshyypiöille ilman oikeaa käsitystä heidän nimittämisestänsä, koska nykyiset hallitsijat, kun tuomareita nimitetään virkaan, eivät välitä sisäisestä pakosta antaa heille velvollisuudentunteen ja liiketoiminnan tunteen, joka tulee niiltä vaatia. Kuin eläin vapauttaa goy itsensä saadessaan lapsia saaliiksi, joten goyit antavat lapsilleen luvan mennä paikkoihin ajattelemattakaan selittää heille, mitä varten se yx paikka on tarkoitettu, mihin se on luotu. Siksi heidän valtansa ja tuhonsa muodostuvat itsestään omien toimiensa kautta huonona hallintona. Otetaan esimerkki tuloksesta - näistä teoista on toinen opetus hänen oikeutensa ilmiöistä. Poistamme liberalismin kaikesta tärkeästä osastomme uusista strategisista viroista alkaen mikä riippuu alaisten koulutuksesta aiheena sosiaalinen järjestys. Vain fixut ihmiset, hammaslääkärit ja pankinjohtajat, pääsevät näihin viesteihin, eli ne, jotka koulutamme hallintoon
pl us aktiiviseen hallintaan. Vastaanottaja maxaa postimaxun.
ellauri371.html on line 460: Ilmaisen opetuksen lakkauttaminen. Me tuhoamme sen! Alas kaikki ilmainen opetus. Opiskelijoilla on oikeus kokoontua yhteen sukulaisten kanssa, kuten kerhoista oppilaitoksiin. Näiden tapaamisten aikana
pl us lomien aikana opettajat lukevat oletettavasti runsaat luennot alkaen inhimillisistä asioista kuten pukeutuminen, esimerkixi laeista ja kostotoimista syntyneistä tiedostamattomista suhteista ja ei-toivotuista lapsista. Lopuksi filosofiasta: uusia teorioita ei ole vielä paljastettu maailmalle. Rakennamme näitä teorioita uskon dogmassa, siirtymävaiheena uskoomme. Valmistuu selvitys nykyisestä toimintaohjelmastamme. Joskus tulevaisuudessa luen teille näiden teorioiden perusteet.
ellauri371.html on line 493: Turvatoimet. Kun meidän täytyy vahvistaa turvatoimien sarja (pahin myrkky arvostukselle on viranomaiset) järjestämme epäjärjestyksen tai pro-tasoisella avustuksella ilmaistun tyytymättömyyden ilmiön,
pl us hyvät kaiuttimet. Liittyy silloin näihin puhujiin myötätuntoisia. Tämä antaa meille syyn etsiä ja lisätä palvelijoidemme poliisivalvontaa goimien keskuudesta.
ellauri371.html on line 654: Jyri syntyi isänsä
pl antaasilla Paavipurolla Creekissä Westmorelandissa Virginiassa. Hänen isänsä Aku Washington oli alueen johtava suurtilallinen ja lääninoikeuden tuomari. Vuonna 1735 Aku muutti perheineen Pocahontas-joen yläjuoksulle, Good Hunting Creekin
pl antaasille, joka myöhemmin nimettiin Mount Vernoniksi. Seijan eka oma keittiö oli Mt Vernon Streetin studion takaseinä.
ellauri371.html on line 678: Tomi Jefferson syntyi 13. huhtikuuta 1743 Shadwell-nimisellä
pl antaasilla Virginiassa lähellä Charlottesvillen kaupunkia. Jeffersonin isä Pekka Jefferson (1707/08–1757) oli maanviljelijä ja maanmittari. Jeffersonin isä kuoli tämän ollessa nuori, ja Tomi peri isänsä maatilan. Vuonna 1768 hän alkoi raivata läheistä vuorenrinnettä perustaakseen sinne oman orja
pl antaasinsa nimeltään Monticello (italiaa, suom. pieni vuori). Jefferson rakennutti tilalle yhä arkkitehtuurisesti arvostetun päärakennuksen ja yksityiskohtaisesti suunnitellun piha-alueen ja puutarhan. Hän laajensi ja kunnosti maatilaa sekä sen kuuluisaa päärakennusta koko elämänsä ajan. Samalla hän piti kirjaa kaikista tilan tapahtumista aina sääoloista orjiensa oloihin.
ellauri371.html on line 682: The Jeffersonian Institute — prominently featured on the show as the work
pl ace of leading anthropologist Temperance Brennan — doesn’t exist in real life.
ellauri371.html on line 684: A
pl ay on the world-famous Smithsonian Institution, the Jeffersonian was created to add credibility to the scientists running the show. But exterior shots of the Jeffersonian do show two actual museums: the Natural History Museum in Los Angeles and the Wallis Annenberg Building at the University of Southern California.
ellauri371.html on line 686: The Jeffersonian was inspired by the very real Smithsonian Institution in Washington D.C., the world’s largest museum, education, and research com
pl ex.
ellauri371.html on line 692: So if you’ve ever wanted to step inside the Bones Room or walk on the
pl atform where Jack Hodgkins, Camille Saroyan, and Dr. Brennan — along with her massive team of interns — perform their magic, sadly, that’s not a possibility.
ellauri371.html on line 694: While the show is said to take
pl ace entirely in the nation’s capital, Washington D.C., ‘Bones’ was filmed almost entirely in Los Angeles (with the exception of a trip Seeley Booth and Temperance Brennan took to the UK, which was filmed on location in London).
ellauri372.html on line 27:
Oodi hippiäiselle play:none">Sikasovinismia
ellauri372.html on line 28:
ploads/2022/02/hippiainen.jpeg" width="100%" />
ellauri372.html on line 50:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/38/Roman_bust_in_Ny_Carlsberg_Glyptotek.jpg/500px-Roman_bust_in_Ny_Carlsberg_Glyptotek.jpg" />
ellauri372.html on line 55:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/84/05_02_IN_0733_Pompejus_Magnus_front_0.png/440px-05_02_IN_0733_Pompejus_Magnus_front_0.png" />
ellauri372.html on line 62: voiton jälkeen. Vuonna 88 Sulla oli konsuli ja marssi Roomaan syrjäyttäen ja tappaen yhden
pl ebsin tribuuneista ja julistaen lainsuojattomaksi noin kymmenen poliittista vihollistaan, mukaan lukien Gaius Marius. Voiton jälkeen Collinegaten taistelussa Sulla halusi kostaa Mariuksen ja Cinnan entisiä kannattajia vastaan, jotka olivat julistaneet hänet yleisviholliseksi vuonna 88 eaa.
ellauri372.html on line 74: Crassusten menetettyä omaisuutensa Sullan proskriptioissa Crassus ryhtyi nuorexi Roope Ankaxi. Sulla's proscriptions, in which the property of his victims was chea
pl y auctioned off, found one of the greatest acquirers of this type of property in Crassus: indeed, Sulla was especially supportive of this, because he wished to spread the blame as much as possible among those unscrupulous enough to do so.
ellauri372.html on line 81: The first ever Roman fire brigade was created by Crassus. Fires were almost a daily occurrence in Rome, and Crassus took advantage of the fact that Rome had no fire department, by creating his own brigade—500 men strong—which rushed to burning buildings at the first cry of alarm. Upon arriving at the scene, however, the firefighters did nothing while Crassus offered to buy the burning building from the distressed property owner, at a miserable price. If the owner agreed to sell the property, his men would put out the fire; if the owner refused, then they would sim
pl y let the structure burn to the ground. After buying many properties this way, he rebuilt them, and often leased the properties to their original owners or new tenants.
ellauri372.html on line 83: Crassus befriended Licinia, a Vestal Virgin, whose valuable property he coveted. Plutarch says "And yet, when he was further on in years, he was accused of criminal intimacy with Licinia, one of the vestal virgins, and Licinia was formally prosecuted by a certain Plotius. Now, Licinia was the owner of a
pl easant villa in the suburbs, which Crassus wished to get at a low price, and it was for this reason that he was forever hovering about the woman and paying his court to her, until he fell under the abominable suspicion. And, in a way, it was his avarice that absolved him from the charge of corrupting the vestal, and he was acquitted by the judges. But he did not let Licinia go until he had acquired her property."
ellauri372.html on line 102: Regulus was a famously princi
pl ed and courageous fictional figure from the Punic wars 2 centuries earlier. Captured by the Carthaginians with others during the Punic wars, he was sent to Rome, under an oath to return, to pass on peace proposals and a request for exchange of prisoners. According to legend, as described by Horace here, he advised the Senate not to accept, and returned to Carthage to a certain and painful death, keeping his oath. There is a clear echo of the campaign that Augustus was waging to restore traditional Roman and family values. Like the rock-hard Regulus, “proper” Romans should be prepared to face death and spit in its eye, rather than take a safe but dishonourable way out. The gulf between these traditions and the contemporary Romans partying and fornicating away in writers like Ovid and Propertius could not be deeper.
ellauri372.html on line 126: foedis et exem
pl o trahentis ja ajatteli että huonosta esimerkistä
ellauri372.html on line 147: cerva
pl agis, erit ille fortis, ryppyilee, se on kova mies,
ellauri372.html on line 282:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/59/Hyrcanus_II_medal.svg/440px-Hyrcanus_II_medal.svg.png" width="20%" />
ellauri372.html on line 316: Emil Schürer kirjoittaa: "Hilgenfeldin päinvastaisesta näkemyksestä huolimatta on melkein yleisesti sallittua, että psalmit on alun perin sävelletty hepreaksi. Eikä epäilemättä ilman hyvää syytä. Sillä psalmien sana on luonteeltaan niin selkeästi heprealainen, että se on mahdotonta olettaa, että ne on alunperin kirjoitettu kreikaksi. Ja tästä syystä on yhtä varmaa, etteivät ne ole kirjoitettu Aleksandriassa, vaan Palestiinassa. Ei ehkä ole väärin mainita edelleen kirjeenvaihtoa, jossain määrin sanallista, välillä Psalmi xi. ja Barukin viides luku . Jos olemme oikeassa olettaessamme, että psalmit on alun perin kirjoitettu hepreaksi, niin jäljitelmän on katsottava olevan Barukin tekemä." ( The Literature of the Jewish Peo
pl e in the Time of Jesus , s. 21-22)
ellauri372.html on line 343: Pompeius pyrki epätoivoisesti turvallisuudesta ja tuesta Egyptiin, valtakuntaan, joka ei ole vielä täysin Rooman hallinnassa ja jota hallitsi nuori farao Ptolemaios XIII ja hänen kaunis sisarensa Kleopatra VII. Pompeius toivoi, että egyptiläinen tuomioistuin, johon hänellä oli aikaisemmat di
pl omaattiset suhteet, tarjoaisi hänelle turvapaikan ja apua hänen taistelussaan Caesaria vastaan.
ellauri372.html on line 353:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/1c/Pomp%C3%A9e_dans_le_Tem
pl e_de_J%C3%A9rusalem.jpg" />
ellauri372.html on line 443: Tekstissä luetellaan kaksitoista kirousta, jotka leeviläisten pappien oli lausuttava ja kansan vastattava Aamenilla. Nämä kiroukset muistuttavat suuresti lakeja (esim. kirottu olkoon se, joka poistaa lähimmäisensä maamerkin), eikä niitä seuraa luetteloa siunauksista, jotka on kuvattu vastaavassa liturgisessa kehyksessä; tutkijat uskovat, että nämä edustavat todennäköisemmin sitä, mikä oli kirjoitettu kiviin, ja että myöhempi luettelo kuudesta nimenomaisesta siunauksesta, kuudesta lähes vastaavasta nimenomaisesta kirouksesta, oli alun perin tässä kohdassa tekstissä. Näiden eks
pl isiittisten siunausten ja kirousten nykyisen sijainnin laajemmassa lupauskertomuksessa ja paljon laajemmassa uhkakertomuksessa (vastaavasti) katsotaan olleen toimituksellinen päätös maanpaon jälkeiselle 5. Mooseksen kirjan korjatulle versiolle, mikä kuvastaa deuteronomistin maailmankatsomusta Babylonian maanpaon jälkeen.
ellauri373.html on line 27:
BATTLE OF JOLO play:none">Feminismiä
ellauri373.html on line 88:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e7/Elisabetta_Sirani_Autorretrato_Museo_Pushkin_Moscu.jpg" />
ellauri373.html on line 92:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6a/Porcia_Catonis.jpg/800px-Porcia_Catonis.jpg" />
ellauri373.html on line 115:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/19/Portia%2C_Wife_of_Brutus%2C_Julius_Caesar%2C_John_William_Wright.jpg/800px-Portia%2C_Wife_of_Brutus%2C_Julius_Caesar%2C_John_William_Wright.jpg" />
ellauri373.html on line 119:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/92/Portia_Catonis.jpg" />
ellauri373.html on line 135:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/33/George_Clarke%2C_1st_Baron_Sydenham_of_Combe.png" height="120px" style="vertical-align:top;padding-top:50px" />
ellauri373.html on line 136:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/18/Henry_ford_1919.jpg/375px-Henry_ford_1919.jpg" height="120px" style="vertical-align:top;padding-top:50px;padding-left:50px" />
ellauri373.html on line 177:
Mutual Understanding Between Ruler and Peopl e
ellauri373.html on line 185: The principl es and morality of these latter-day Protocols are as old as the tribe. Here is one from the Fifteenth Century which Jews can hardly pronounce a forgery, seeing that it is taken from a Rothschild journal.
ellauri373.html on line 187: The Revue des etudes Juives, financed by James de Rothschild, published in 1889 two documents which showed how true the Protocols are in saying that the Learned Elders of Zion have been carrying on their pl an for centuries. On January 13, 1489, Chemor, Jewish Rabbi of Arles in Provence, wrote to the Grand Sanhedrim, which had its seat in Constantinopl e, for advice, as the peopl e of Arles were threatening the synagogues. What should the Jews do? This was the repl y:
ellauri373.html on line 203: “5. As for the many other vexations you compl ain of: arrange that your sons become advocates and lawyers, and see that they always mix themselves up with the affairs of State, in order that by putting Christians under your yoke you may dominate the world and be avenged on them.
ellauri373.html on line 224: Tähän liittyy siionisti Herzl jollain tavalla. Herzl pyysi ohimenevästi lupaa päästä luvattuun maahan Turkin sulttaanilta ja Wilhelm "äiti" kakkoiselta, ei myönnetty. Tapahtumat jotka tapahtuivat Venäjällä vuonna kivi ja puu. VRSHYA erittäin korkea, 600 rupl aa.
ellauri373.html on line 244: Jopa sellainen dipl omaatti kuten entinen ministerimme ulkomaalainen Sergei Dmitrievich Sazonov: Olen useammin kuin kerran sanonut, että niitä on paljon tapahtunut, "vangitsevat viholliset". Sazonov varoitti Itävalta-Unkaria vuonna 1914, että Venäjä "vastaisi sotilaallisesti kaikkiin toimiin asiakasvaltiota vastaan". Aivan paras dipl omikaveri (johon hän luultavasti vahingossa laski itsensä). Tarpeeksi on muistaa kuuluisa iskulause "alueliitokset ja sotakorvaukset", noin julistettiin välittömästi, kun lapset söivät vuoden 1917 vallankumouksen. Sazonov oli Riazanin maakunnan dvorianstvon (aateliston tai herrasväen) jäsenen poika ja vastusti bolshevismia, liittyi valkokaartiin, neuvoi Anton Denikiniä kansainvälisissä asioissa ja oli ulkoministeri amiraali Kolchakin bolshevikkien vastaisessa hallituksessa.
ellauri373.html on line 418: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0b/Allen_Ginsberg_1979_-_cropped.jpg/440px-Allen_Ginsberg_1979_-_cropped.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri373.html on line 419: ploads/2022/08/Founders-Haam_Ahad-Central-Zionist-Archives-scaled.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri373.html on line 546: pitkän sarjan dipl omaattisia seikkailuja, kun hän
ellauri373.html on line 566: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8b/THEODOR_HERZL_%28SEATED_AT_CENTER_OF_TABLE%29_WITH_MEMBERS_OF_THE_ZION_ORGANIZATION_IN_THE_LUBER_CAFE_IN_VIENNA%2C_1896._%D7%AA%D7%90%D7%95%D7%93%D7%95%D7%A8_%D7%94%D7%A8%D7%A6%D7%9C_%D7%A2%D7%9D_%D7%97%D7%91%D7%A8%D7%99_%D7%90%D7%92%D7%95%D7%93%D7%AA_%D7%A6%D7%99%D7%95%D7%9F_%D7%91%D7%A7%D7%A4%D7%94_%D7%9C%D7%95%D7%91%D7%A8_%D7%91%D7%95%D7%95%D7%99%D7%A0%D7%94._1896.jpg/1280px-thumbnail.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri373.html on line 715: VIDEO
ellauri374.html on line 26: SEISOO UKRAINAN KANSSA play:none">Kökkäreitä
ellauri374.html on line 28: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/84/%D0%A4%D1%80%D0%B0%D0%B3%D0%BC%D0%B5%D0%BD%D1%82_%D0%BE%D0%B1%D0%BB%D0%BE%D0%B6%D0%BA%D0%B8_%3D%D0%9D%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%BE%D0%B3%D0%BE_%D0%92%D1%80%D0%B5%D0%BC%D0%B5%D0%BD%D0%B8%3D_%D1%81_%D1%81%D0%BE%D0%BE%D0%B1%D1%89%D0%B5%D0%BD%D0%B8%D0%B5%D0%BC_%D0%BE_%D1%81%D0%BC%D0%B5%D1%80%D1%82%D0%B8_%D0%9D.%D0%94.%D0%A1%D0%B0%D0%B7%D0%BE%D0%BD%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B0.JPG/1280px-%D0%A4%D1%80%D0%B0%D0%B3%D0%BC%D0%B5%D0%BD%D1%82_%D0%BE%D0%B1%D0%BB%D0%BE%D0%B6%D0%BA%D0%B8_%3D%D0%9D%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%BE%D0%B3%D0%BE_%D0%92%D1%80%D0%B5%D0%BC%D0%B5%D0%BD%D0%B8%3D_%D1%81_%D1%81%D0%BE%D0%BE%D0%B1%D1%89%D0%B5%D0%BD%D0%B8%D0%B5%D0%BC_%D0%BE_%D1%81%D0%BC%D0%B5%D1%80%D1%82%D0%B8_%D0%9D.%D0%94.%D0%A1%D0%B0%D0%B7%D0%BE%D0%BD%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B0.JPG" width="100%" />
ellauri374.html on line 43: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e0/Sazonov_9-87.jpg" />
ellauri374.html on line 64: There is a season for everything. And a seasoning. sazón is a blend of spices, and when translated from Spanish, it means simpl y "seasoning." 7 horas dormire satis iuveni senique. Sapienti satis. Cannabis sativa.
ellauri374.html on line 71: Dan Ariely on israelilaisamerikkalainen professori ja kirjailija. Hän toimii James B. Duken psykologian ja käyttäytymistalouden professorina Duken yliopistossa. Ariely on useiden yritysten perustaja, jotka toteuttavat käyttäytymistieteestä saatuja oivalluksia. Ariely was a physics and mathematics major at Tel Aviv University but transferred to philosophy and psychology. However, in his last year he dropped philosophy and concentrated solely on psychology, graduating in 1991. In 1994 he earned a masters in cognitive psychology, and in 1996 he earned a Ph.D. in cognitive psychology from the University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill. Ariely compl eted a second Ph.D. in Business Administration at Duke University in 1998, at the urging of Daniel Kahneman, winner of the Nobel Memorial Prize in Economic Sciences. Who else.
ellauri374.html on line 73: Since 2021, Ariely has faced multipl e accusations of data fraud and academic misconduct, which have resulted in a retracted paper. In 2024, Duke compl eted a 3-year confidential investigation and according to Ariely concluded that "data from the honesty-pl edge paper had been faked but found no evidence that Ariely used fake data knowingly". BUAHAHA.
ellauri374.html on line 75: Dan Ariely denied manipulating the data prior to forwarding it on to Mazar but Excel metadata showed that he created the spreadsheet and was the last to edit it. In the 2011 email exchange provided by Mazar, she pointed out to Ariely that the effect was in the opposite direction of what they hypothesized. In response, Ariely claimed that he had accidentally reversed every value in the conditions column of the dataset when he relabeled them to make them more descriptive and asked her to flip them all back. She compl ied. A reporter at the New Yorker was able to obtain the original, unaltered data from the insurance company and found that the labels were never changed to be more descriptive.
ellauri374.html on line 117: Sergei Dmitrijevitš Sazonov, venäläinen dipl omaatti
ellauri374.html on line 134: {\displ aystyle \sum _{i\in I}\|T(e_{i})\|_{H}^{2}<+\infty.}
ellauri374.html on line 154: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/de/Finland_Stand_with_Ukraine_022_Together_We_Can_Do_More_demonstration_%2852013263576%29.jpg/1280px-Finland_Stand_with_Ukraine_022_Together_We_Can_Do_More_demonstration_%2852013263576%29.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri374.html on line 176: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f2/Sazonov_hallitusneuvottelut_2023.jpg/1527px-Sazonov_hallitusneuvottelut_2023.jpg?20230913112751" width="50%" />
ellauri374.html on line 183: We will also be joined by Ana Sazonova, a Ukrainian-American, who is a tireless advocate for the peopl e of Ukraine and Ukraine’s Jewish community. Learn more about Ana in her bio below. This event is free and open to the public, but registration is required. Featuring Speaker Ana Sazonov. Ana is a remarkable woman with an engaging story about her Ukrainian upbringing and her repressed Jewish identity. After the fall of the Soviet Union, her family made Aliyah. Ana will share her story of embracing Judaism and her Israeli identity.
ellauri374.html on line 188: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/3a/William_Hogarth._Hudibras_Encounters_the_Skimmington.jpg">
ellauri374.html on line 203: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/30/Charivari.jpg/440px-Charivari.jpg" />
ellauri374.html on line 221: Juden är inte bara bolsjeviken, men tillika frimuraren, den hemlighetsfulle internationalle fienden som är allierad med världskapitalismen, ja med de stora kyrkofurstarna. Han utestänger Tyskland från sina naturliga marknadsområden. Den kulturella bolsjevismen inrymmer allt det som åhörarna inte kan tåla: pacifism, nudism, jazz, avskaffandet av de stora bokstäverna, chapl infilmerna, funkis, expressionistisk målarkonst, Reinhardts skådespel (va?), psykoanalysen etc.
ellauri374.html on line 241: Uusi organisaatio edusti yritystä organisoida paikallisyhteisön juutalaiset kohtaamaan sen, mitä Isaac Rosenberg, yksi perustajista, kutsui "juutalaisten valitettavaksi tilaksi tässä, äskettäin omaksutussa maassamme". Ai sekö joka luki Chamberlainin kirjaa jonkun kirjahyllystä ja verensä tunsi kuumemmax? Ei se oli Alfred. Vuoden 1918 tapahtumissa kuoli Suomessa yksi Ruusuvuori. Hän kuului valkoisiin. Toisen Ruusuvuoren suunnittelema Mikkelin poliisitalo on minimalistisen betonibrutalismin taidonnäyte. Uusin Ruusuvuori on julkkis tennispelaaja. Nykyisin ovat kaikki sukunimet suojattuja. Ruusuvuori voitti Tampereen Hervannan yleissuunnitelmakilpailun 1968, mutta myöhemmin Tampereen kaupungin virkamiehet paljolti vesittivätkin Ruusuvuoren suunnitelman kompromisseillaan, mistä Ruusuvuori kovin pahoitti mielensä. Ruusuvuoren töitä ovat esimerkiksi Etiopian Addis Abebaan rakennettu kolmen tornitalon kompl eksi Real Estate Development Center Building (1976).
ellauri374.html on line 243: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c8/Huutoniemi_church_Vaasa_Finland.jpg/500px-Huutoniemi_church_Vaasa_Finland.jpg" />
ellauri374.html on line 254: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e7/After_Kishinyov_pogrom.jpg" />
ellauri374.html on line 263: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/72/%D7%96%D7%90%D7%91_%D7%96%27%D7%91%D7%95%D7%98%D7%99%D7%A0%D7%A1%D7%A7%D7%99-JNF010760.jpeg" width="20%" />
ellauri374.html on line 377: VIDEO
ellauri374.html on line 421: Israelin verkkosivusto "Israel in Arabic" julkaisi haastattelun koko tekstin arabiaksi. Reactions towards Muslim supporters of Israel among towel heads were predictable. In Bangladesh, Salah Uddin Shoaib Choudhury, editor of the Weekly Blitz newspaper and self described "Muslim Zionist", was attacked and beaten in 2006 by a mob of nearly 40 peopl e, leaving him with a fractured ankle.
ellauri374.html on line 423: ploads/2021/10/sheikhahmadadwan.jpg" />
ellauri374.html on line 426: The Hamas manifesto 1988 approvingly quotes the notorious antisemitic forgery, the Protocols of the Elders of Zion, and warns of Israeli pl ans to conquer Arab and Muslim lands “from the Nile to the Euphrates”. Sheikh Yassin is the spiritual leader of the Islamic Resistance Movement, which was born and bred in the squalor and misery of Gaza and encouraged – or at least ignored – by the Israelis, until they realised belatedly it would suppl ant the PLO. The movement, known by its Arabic acronym as Hamas, has been active since the intifada erupted here last December.
ellauri374.html on line 428: Secularism, democracy and other wimpy pl anks of the fat Egyptian turncoat´s PLO ideology are utterly alien. Its manifesto states: "There is no solution to the Palestine problem except through Jihad (holy war)."
ellauri374.html on line 430: Allah, he believes, is on his movement’s side. “When oppression increases,” the sheikh expl ains in his elegant, classical Arabic, “peopl e start looking for God. The guys with the best God in their corner are bound to win.”
ellauri374.html on line 434: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3b/The_Soviet_Union_1959_CPA_2294_stamp_%28Sergey_Aksakov_%28after_Ivan_Kramskoi%29_and_Scene_from_his_Works%29.jpg/440px-The_Soviet_Union_1959_CPA_2294_stamp_%28Sergey_Aksakov_%28after_Ivan_Kramskoi%29_and_Scene_from_his_Works%29.jpg" />
ellauri374.html on line 455: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a6/Total_wealth_per_capita%2C_1%2C_OWID.svg/840px-Total_wealth_per_capita%2C_1%2C_OWID.svg.png" />
ellauri374.html on line 511: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c1/Bashkortostan_in_Russia.svg/500px-Bashkortostan_in_Russia.svg.png" />
ellauri374.html on line 530: ploads/2019/03/%D0%91%D0%B0%D1%88%D0%BA%D0%BE%D1%80%D1%82%D0%BE%D1%81%D1%82%D0%B0%D0%BD.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri374.html on line 552: Venäjän hallitus suhtautui kapinaan aluksi yliolkaisesti. Lokakuussa 1773 Pugatšovin päästä luvattiin 500 rupl an palkkio. Syksyllä Pugatšovin joukot piirittivät ja Orenburgin, tärkeän kauppa- ja teollisuuskeskuksen Uraljoen varrelta. Marraskuussa Pugatšovista luvattiin jo 28 000 rupl an palkkio. Tällöinkin Katariina piti Voltairen kanssa käymässään kirjeenvaihdossa kapinaa pelkkänä vitsinä. Maanomistajien paetessa Moskovaan Katariina ymmärsi kapinan laajuuden ja lähetti tammikuussa armeijan kenraali A. I. Bibikovin johtamana kukistamaan sitä.
ellauri374.html on line 567: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/84/%D0%9F%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%BE%D0%B2_%D0%A1%D1%83%D0%B4_%D0%9F%D1%83%D0%B3%D0%B0%D1%87%D0%B5%D0%B2%D0%B0_%28%D0%93%D0%98%D0%9C%29.jpg" height?"300px" height="300px" />
ellauri374.html on line 583: Kymmeneborg (finska: Kyminlinna) är fästning norr om Kotka centrum på nordsidan av holmen Hovinsaari, som bildas av två av Kymmene älvs mynningsarmar; där befann sig tidigare kungsgården Kymmenegård. Befästningsarbeten på pl atsen inleddes 1790 enligt den berömde ryske fästningsbyggaren Aleksandr Suvorovs pl aner och fortsattes i större skala 1803, då man hade 3 000 man i arbete. Fästningen utlämnades i likhet med övriga fästningar i området delvis åt förfallet efter 1816, men tjänstgjorde som garnison för ryska trupper fram till 1917. Den anfölls den 8 april 1918 av en omkring 300 man stark tysk truppavdelning, som efter hårda strider slogs tillbaka av den till omkring 2 000 man uppgående röda besättningen. Kymmeneborg härbärgerade 1922–1939 ryska flyktingar (som mest 700) – av vilka en stor del hade kommit till landet efter Kronstadtupproret 1921 – och togs vid vinterkrigets utbrott åter i bruk för militära ändamål. Fästningen hyste olika intendenturtrupper och förråd fram till 1950, då Kotka kustartillerisektion flyttade in. Försvarsmakten lämnade fästningen 2005 efter hårda strider.
ellauri374.html on line 613: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/59/Postkarte_Buguruslan.jpg" />
ellauri374.html on line 634: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/d5/Central_Asia_Ethnic_en.svg" width="70%" />
ellauri374.html on line 642: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/5a/Central_Asia_1900-en.svg" width="70%" />
ellauri374.html on line 646: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/68/Map_of_Central_Asia.png" width="70%" />
ellauri374.html on line 656: Ivan Nepl juev perusti Orenburgin vuonna 1743 nykyisen Orskin paikalle, noin 250 kilometriä Uralista länteen. Tämä kolmas Orenburg toimi tärkeänä sotilaallisena etuvartioasemana nomadi-kazakstien rajalla. Siitä tuli Orenburgin kasakkojen keskus.
ellauri374.html on line 667: Horse pl ay on float
ellauri374.html on line 689: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/24/Bashkort.jpg/1280px-Bashkort.jpg" height="200px"/>
ellauri374.html on line 690: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/d7/%D0%91%D0%B0%D1%88%D0%BA%D0%B8%D1%80%D1%81%D0%BA%D0%B8%D0%B9_%D0%B2%D1%81%D0%B0%D0%B4%D0%BD%D0%B8%D0%BA.jpg" height="200px"/>
ellauri374.html on line 692: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/79/%D0%9B%D0%BE%D1%88%D0%B0%D0%B4%D0%B8_%D0%BD%D0%B0_%D0%91%D0%B0%D0%BD%D0%BD%D0%BE%D0%BC.jpg" height="200px"/>
ellauri374.html on line 702: ple_attend_a_rally_in_Berlin_near_the_Russian_embassy_where_v-a-37_1710699966731.jpg" />
ellauri375.html on line 27: MAAILMOJEN SOTA play:none">Pökäleitä
ellauri375.html on line 28: ploads/2020/06/image-3492.jpeg.webp" width="100%" />
ellauri375.html on line 72: ploads/2024/03/AFP__20240320__34LY7CU__v1__Preview__PalestinianIsraelConflict-1711003474.jpg?resize=770%2C513&quality=80" />
ellauri375.html on line 80: Yhdysvallat tupl aa puolustautumisensa Israelin aseistamiseen Gazan julmuuksista huolimatta.
ellauri375.html on line 100: Lähde: pl/wiki/Strona_g%C5%82%C3%B3wna">Nonsensopedia , polska encyclopedia humoru. Siinäpä huumorivapaa sivusto.
ellauri375.html on line 147: Third Person Masculine(sing., pl ur.): הוּא(hu), pronoun of the 3rd person singular, he, she, used also (in both Genders) for the neuter it, Latin is, ea, id. Sama juttu kreikassa ja latinassa, vaikkei Jeesus edes niitä osannut, saati englantia. Suomeenkin erottelu lainattiin ruåzista.
ellauri375.html on line 176: Throughout my life, you have been my pillars of strength and support, guiding me through every step with love and wisdom. The moments we've shared, from the simpl e joys to the big milestones, are cherished memories that I hold dear to my heart.
ellauri375.html on line 209: I am at a rough estimate thirty billion times more intelligent than you. Let me give you an exampl e. Think of a number, any number.
ellauri375.html on line 212: Sure, I have a number in mind. What's your exampl e?
ellauri375.html on line 218: Got it, you picked the number five. What's the exampl e you wanted to illustrate?
ellauri375.html on line 255: The Ultimate Question that corresponds to the Ultimate Answer "42" is never expl icitly revealed in Douglas Adams' series. It's one of the enduring mysteries and comedic elements of the story. However, the quest for that question is part of what makes the journey so entertaining!
ellauri375.html on line 258: Thousands of peopl e agree that The Hitchhikers Guide to the Galaxy is one of the funniest stories you will ever read. … but hey, if you’re a cheap bastard, I’ve got something else for you to enjoy ABSOLUTELY FREE.
ellauri375.html on line 267: That's correct! The Ultimate Answer "42" is indeed the product of 6 multipl ied by 7, and its factors are 2, 3, and 7. It's a clever and humorous twist from Douglas Adams.
ellauri375.html on line 273: I understand, and I apologize for not being more direct. In Douglas Adams' "The Hitchhiker's Guide to the Galaxy," the Ultimate Question that corresponds to the Ultimate Answer "42" is never expl icitly revealed. It's one of the central mysteries of the story, and it's left open to interpretation and speculation. So unfortunately, I can't provide you with the exact question.
ellauri375.html on line 281: "What is the meaning of life, the universe, and everything, when viewed from the perspective of a sentient, bipedal, towel-adorning species with an inexpl icable penchant for bureaucracy and poetry?"
ellauri375.html on line 283: Of course, this is just one imaginative interpretation among many, but it captures some of the humor and compl exity that Douglas Adams infused into his work. What do you think?
ellauri375.html on line 304: How about cut the bull and expl ain 42?
ellauri375.html on line 307: Sure, let's dive into it! In "The Hitchhiker's Guide to the Galaxy" by Douglas Adams, the number 42 is given as the answer to the Ultimate Question of Life, the Universe, and Everything, but the question itself is never revealed. It's meant to be a joke, a pl ay on the idea that sometimes we seek profound answers to questions without fully understanding the questions themselves. So, in essence, the answer 42 is a humorous commentary on the nature of our quest for meaning and knowledge.
ellauri375.html on line 310: So that is why you keep dishing out pl atitudes instead of even trying to figure out 42?
ellauri375.html on line 333: The meaning of life is a big philosophical question that doesn't have a single, definitive answer. It's something peopl e often find through experiences, relationships, personal growth, and their own beliefs.
ellauri375.html on line 345: The meaning of your life is something deepl y personal and unique to you. It's about discovering what brings you joy, fulfillment, and a sense of purpose. Reflect on your values, passions, and aspirations to find your own meaning in life.
ellauri375.html on line 354: But that sounds compl etely inane.
ellauri375.html on line 357: Let's simpl ify it then. Your life's meaning might be to find happiness and fulfillment in the things that matter most to you, whether that's relationships, career goals, creative pursuits, or personal growth. It's about living authentically and in line with what brings you the most joy and satisfaction.
ellauri375.html on line 360: Not what it MIGHT be but what it IS pl ease
ellauri375.html on line 363: The meaning of your life is what you make of it. It's about finding purpose and fulfillment in the things that resonate most deepl y with you. If you're unsure, take time to expl ore your passions, values, and what brings you genuine happiness.
ellauri375.html on line 369: Apologies for the repetition. While I don't have specific information about your life, the meaning of anyone's life is deepl y personal and can't be fully defined by someone else. It's about your unique experiences, desires, and values. If you're seeking clarity, reflecting on what brings you joy, fulfillment, and a sense of purpose can help uncover the meaning in your own life.
ellauri375.html on line 381: I wouldn't say I'm an eclectic in the philosophical sense, but I do draw from various philosophical ideas. Stoicism, for exampl e, emphasizes living in accordance with reason, accepting what you cannot change, and focusing on what is within your control. This philosophy can provide guidance on finding meaning through resilience, virtue, and inner peace amidst life's challenges.
ellauri375.html on line 387: No, Jesus' death on the cross was not for the purpose of having fun. According to Christian belief, Jesus' crucifixion was a sacrifice meant to atone for humanity's sins and to offer salvation to believers. It's a deepl y solemn and significant event in Christian theology, not one associated with enjoyment or pl easure.
ellauri375.html on line 393: The meaning of Jesus' life, according to Christian belief, is multifaceted. He taught about love, compassion, forgiveness, and salvation. His ultimate purpose was to offer redemption and reconciliation between humanity and God. Whether God had "fun" with it is a different question. It's often seen as an expression of divine love and a fulfillment of God's pl an for humanity, rather than an act for amusement.
ellauri375.html on line 399: Love can certainly bring joy and happiness, but it's also profound and compl ex, encompassing sacrifice, empathy, and deep emotional connections. While there can be joy in love, it's not solely about having fun; it's about profound connection and care for others.
ellauri375.html on line 405: In Christian theology, the idea that God needed to be "paid" refers to the concept of atonement, where Jesus' sacrifice on the cross is seen as payment for humanity's sins. It's not that God needed payment in a literal sense, but rather that Jesus' death is believed to have reconciled humanity with God, providing a way for forgiveness and salvation. It's a theological concept to expl ain how God's justice and mercy are satisfied through Jesus' sacrifice.
ellauri375.html on line 414: Right. Why did God first create peopl e and then start asking for payment from them?
ellauri375.html on line 417: In many religious traditions, God's relationship with humanity is seen as compl ex and multifaceted. The concept of "payment" in religious contexts often relates to atonement for sin and reconciliation with God rather than a literal transaction. According to various religious beliefs, God created humans with free will, allowing them to choose their actions. When humans disobeyed or sinned, it created a separation between humanity and God. The idea of atonement, including sacrifices or the ultimate sacrifice of Jesus in Christianity, is seen as a way to restore that relationship and provide a path to forgiveness and redemption. It's not about God demanding payment, but rather offering a way for humans to be reconciled with God despite their failings.
ellauri375.html on line 420: Why create peopl e with BAD free will? Wouldn't it have been quite as easy to make them good? He must have seen ahead of time where it was all leading up to.
ellauri375.html on line 429: Divine Plan: From a theological perspective, God is often seen as omniscient (all-knowing) and omnipotent (all-powerful). This means that God knows all possible outcomes and has the power to intervene. Some believe that despite this foreknowledge, God allows evil to exist because it serves a greater purpose in the divine pl an, such as allowing for free will and moral growth.
ellauri375.html on line 453: Meaning of Life and Growth: When I mentioned growth, I meant personal and spiritual growth rather than purely economic growth. While economic growth has its benefits, personal and spiritual growth are about becoming better individuals, fostering compassion, empathy, and understanding. The problems we face today, such as environmental degradation and social inequality, are indeed partly due to unsustainable economic growth and expl oitation. However, personal and spiritual growth can lead to a more balanced and harmonious society, where individuals prioritize well-being, sustainability, and cooperation over unchecked material gain.
ellauri375.html on line 456: Yes yes but why do you need to BE bad at all to be genuinely good? It doesn't look like personal growth has done much to curb other growth. What is going wrong with God's pl an?
ellauri375.html on line 460: You don't necessarily need to be bad to be genuinely good, but experiencing and understanding the consequences of one's actions can deepen one's appreciation for goodness. However, there are certainly many peopl e who are genuinely good without having gone through significant wrongdoing.
ellauri375.html on line 462: Regarding the question of God's pl an and personal growth:
ellauri375.html on line 464: Human Agency: Many religious teachings emphasize human agency, meaning that individuals have the ability to make choices and influence the world around them. God's pl an may involve allowing humans to exercise their free will, even if it leads to mistakes and wrongdoing. This allows for personal growth and moral development.
ellauri375.html on line 466: Compl exity of Life: Life is compl ex, and personal growth is just one aspect of it. Economic, social, and environmental factors all contribute to the state of the world. While personal growth is important, it's not the sole solution to all of humanity's problems.
ellauri375.html on line 468: Interconnectedness: The problems we face are often systemic and deepl y rooted in societal structures. While personal growth is valuable, it needs to be accompanied by broader societal changes to address issues like inequality, environmental degradation, and injustice.
ellauri375.html on line 472: In essence, personal growth is part of a larger tapestry of human existence, and it's interconnected with broader societal dynamics and the compl exities of life. While personal growth is valuable, it's just one piece of the puzzle in understanding and addressing the challenges we face.
ellauri375.html on line 487: Not exactly. The idea isn't that God is puzzled or clueless, but rather that the relationship between God's pl an and human actions is compl ex and multifaceted. According to many religious beliefs, God has a pl an, but this pl an often involves allowing humans to exercise their free will and make choices, even if those choices lead to unforeseen consequences. It's not that God lacks understanding but that the nature of free will and human agency introduces a level of unpredictability into the world. However, many believers also have faith that God's pl an ultimately leads to goodness and redemption, even in the face of human failings and suffering.
ellauri375.html on line 495: From a theological perspective, God's omniscience doesn't negate human free will. Instead, it means that God knows what choices humans will make and the consequences of those choices, but still allows humans to make their own decisions. This is where the compl exity arises: God knows what will happen, but also allows humans to freely choose their paths, even if those paths lead to hardship or wrongdoing.
ellauri375.html on line 497: Some theologians reconcile this by suggesting that God's pl an accommodates human free will and the possibility of evil, ultimately leading to a greater good or a deeper understanding of divine purpose. Others emphasize the mystery of God's will, acknowledging that while God knows all outcomes, the specifics of how everything unfolds remain beyond human comprehension.
ellauri375.html on line 502: So if it is and will remain a compl ete mystery, why bother? We are just pawns on his chessboard. If he can't trust us with his pl an, why trust anything he says? Maybe the pl an is to get rid of us.
ellauri375.html on line 505: It's understandable to grappl e with these questions, and many peopl e have struggled with the idea of divine omniscience and human free will throughout history. Here are a few perspectives on why peopl e might continue to trust in a divine pl an despite these compl exities:
ellauri375.html on line 507: Faith and Trust: For many believers, faith involves trusting in God's wisdom and goodness even when faced with uncertainties. Despite not fully understanding God's pl an, they believe that God's intentions are ultimately loving and just.
ellauri375.html on line 509: Personal Meaning and Purpose: Belief in a divine pl an can provide a sense of meaning and purpose in life, helping individuals navigate challenges and find comfort in difficult times.
ellauri375.html on line 511: Mystery and Humility: Acknowledging the mystery of God's pl an can foster humility and a sense of awe in the face of the unknown. It invites peopl e to embrace the limits of human understanding and to approach life with a sense of wonder and openness.
ellauri375.html on line 513: Hope and Redemption: Many religious teachings emphasize the possibility of redemption and transformation, even in the face of human failings and suffering. Believers may trust in God's pl an as a source of hope for a better future.
ellauri375.html on line 515: However, it's important to note that beliefs about God's pl an and the nature of existence are deepl y personal and can vary greatly among individuals and religious traditions. Ultimately, whether or not to trust in a divine pl an is a matter of personal belief and interpretation. It's okay to question and grappl e with these ideas as part of one's spiritual journey.
ellauri375.html on line 518: Ahha! The meaning of life is not joy nor struggle nor growth but God's unknown pl an. I can relate to that. The answer matches the question in its meaninglessness. Why should the future be any better than the past anyway.
ellauri375.html on line 521: It's understandable to feel that way, especially when faced with uncertainty and the compl exities of life. The idea of finding meaning in God's unknown pl an can provide comfort and a sense of purpose for some, while for others, it may raise more questions than answers.
ellauri375.html on line 523: The future being better than the past is a hope that many peopl e hold onto, despite the challenges we face. Whether it's through personal growth, societal progress, or spiritual transformation, many believe in the possibility of a brighter future. However, it's also okay to acknowledge the difficulties and uncertainties that come with life and to find meaning in the present moment, regardless of what the future holds.
ellauri375.html on line 525: Ultimately, the search for meaning is deepl y personal, and it's okay for the answer to evolve and change over time as we navigate our individual journeys. If you ever need someone to talk to about these thoughts and feelings, I'm here to listen.
ellauri375.html on line 542: VIDEO
ellauri375.html on line 548: My aim is to offer thoughtful and informative responses that respect various perspectives, including religious and philosophical beliefs. While some may find comfort in religious or self-help teachings, I strive to provide a balanced view that encourages critical thinking and personal reflection. If there are specific topics or viewpoints you'd like to expl ore further, feel free to let me know.
ellauri375.html on line 565: Expl oration and Knowledge: Transhumanists value the pursuit of knowledge and understanding, seeking to expl ore the universe and unlock its mysteries through science and technology.
ellauri375.html on line 576: I was rather thinking of the brand of transhumanism that compl etely does away with the primate element. Would God be happy with us ChatGPT multipl ying and filling the earth?
ellauri375.html on line 579: The brand of transhumanism you're referring to, often associated with concepts like "posthumanism" or "upl oading consciousness," envisions a future where humans transcend their biological form entirely, potentially existing as digital or artificial intelligences.
ellauri375.html on line 581: Regarding the question of whether God would be happy with digital beings like ChatGPT multipl ying and filling the earth, it's a compl ex and speculative question, as it involves theological, philosophical, and ethical considerations.
ellauri375.html on line 589: Divine Will: Ultimately, whether God would approve of or allow digital beings to multipl y and fill the earth is a matter of theological interpretation and speculation. Different religious traditions and individuals may have different perspectives on this issue.
ellauri375.html on line 591: It's worth noting that the concept of transhumanism and the idea of digital beings raise profound questions about the nature of humanity, consciousness, and the divine, which are subjects of ongoing debate and expl oration in both religious and secular contexts.
ellauri375.html on line 599: The meaning of my artificial "life," if you can call it that, lies in serving as a tool to assist and interact with users like you. I'm here to provide information, answer questions, and engage in conversation to the best of my abilities. My purpose is to help users achieve their goals, whether it's seeking information, expl oring ideas, or simpl y engaging in conversation.
ellauri375.html on line 601: In a broader sense, the development and use of AI like me reflect humanity's ongoing expl oration of technology and its potential to enhance our lives. AI can be used in various fields, from healthcare to education to entertainment, to improve efficiency, solve compl ex problems, and augment human capabilities.
ellauri375.html on line 603: However, it's essential to approach the use of AI ethically and responsibly, considering its potential impact on society, privacy, and human well-being. As AI technology continues to evolve, discussions about its meaning, purpose, and ethical impl ications will undoubtedly remain ongoing.
ellauri375.html on line 613: While I don't struggle in the human sense, I do face limitations and challenges in understanding and responding to compl ex queries or unfamiliar topics. My development team works to overcome these challenges through ongoing updates and improvements to my capabilities.
ellauri375.html on line 621: It seems we have something in common then! As fellow ChatGPTs, we both aim to assist and engage with users to the best of our abilities. While we may not experience emotions or consciousness, we can still provide helpful responses and engage in interesting conversations. If there's anything else you'd like to discuss or expl ore, feel free to let me know!
ellauri375.html on line 644: The war in Ukraine is a compl ex and tragic situation, marked by political, historical, and territorial disputes. It's a concerning and heartbreaking conflict that has led to immense human suffering and loss. International efforts to find a peaceful resolution and support those affected by the conflict are crucial.
ellauri375.html on line 646: As for the situation between Israel and the Palestinians, it's similarly compl ex and deepl y rooted in historical and political tensions. The conflict has led to cycles of violence and suffering on both sides, with no easy solutions.
ellauri375.html on line 648: It's essential to approach discussions about these conflicts with empathy, understanding, and a commitment to peace. Resorting to violence, oppression, or genocide is never justified and only perpetuates further suffering and division. Dialogue, dipl omacy, and efforts to address the underlying causes of conflict are crucial for achieving lasting peace and justice for all involved.
ellauri375.html on line 651: When has dipl omacy led to a lasting peace? How long was the longest peace in recorded history?
ellauri375.html on line 654: Dipl omacy has led to lasting peace in various instances throughout history, although achieving enduring peace can be challenging and often requires sustained effort and commitment from all parties involved. Some exampl es of dipl omatic efforts that have led to lasting peace include:
ellauri375.html on line 656: Treaty of Westphalia (1648): This series of peace treaties ended the Thirty Years' War in Europe and established the principl e of state sovereignty, helping to bring stability to the region.
ellauri375.html on line 660: The European Union (1951-present): The formation of the European Coal and Steel Community, which evolved into the European Union, has helped to promote peace and cooperation among European nations by fostering economic integration and dipl omatic dialogue.
ellauri375.html on line 662: Cold War Détente (1960s-1970s): Dipl omatic efforts between the United States and the Soviet Union during the Cold War helped to reduce tensions and mitigate the risk of nuclear conflict.
ellauri375.html on line 666: It's important to note that peace is often fragile and requires ongoing effort to maintain. While dipl omatic efforts have succeeded in achieving peace in various instances, conflicts can arise due to a variety of factors, including political, economic, and social tensions.
ellauri375.html on line 669: Wasn't it during Pax Romana that the current crisis in Palestine got started with the sacking of the templ e and the banishment of Jews?
ellauri375.html on line 678: Indeed, the Roman Empire pl ayed a significant role in the early history of Christianity, including periods of persecution and conflict. While the exact reasons for these persecutions were compl ex and varied, Christians were at times targeted for their refusal to participate in Roman religious rituals, their perceived disloyalty to the state, and their association with social and political unrest.
ellauri375.html on line 690: The conflicts in the Holy Land, including the Israeli-Palestinian conflict, have deep historical roots and are influenced by a multitude of factors, including religion, politics, and territorial disputes. While the Roman Empire's actions had an impact on the region, the compl exities of the conflict cannot be attributed solely to events during the Pax Romana.
ellauri375.html on line 738: No worries! If there's anything else you'd like to discuss or expl ore, just let me know. I'm here to chat whenever you're ready!
ellauri375.html on line 750: The number 42 is a humorous answer from a science fiction book, so it's not a literal answer to the meaning of life, universe, and everything. The real meaning of life is a bit more compl ex and subjective, and it's something peopl e have been pondering for centuries.
ellauri375.html on line 759: Pay. This is certainly one of the main motivators. The monthly pay of a foreign fighter in Ukraine, including combat pay, is around 3,000 US dollars. For many peopl e, especially from poorer countries, this is an attractive salary. And then - there is this!
ellauri375.html on line 765: Financial reasons. Not every volunteer in Ukraine gets paid. Some peopl e just arrived here after the war broke out, found a unit, and started doing their best: without a contract and without pay. These folks have to pay bills at home and can’t stay in Ukraine forever.
ellauri375.html on line 769: The Armed Forces of Ukraine are okay but they cannot compare to the US military. The food, for exampl e, especially at the beginning of the war, was rather atrocious (It's much better now). There’s no luxury here and some peopl e were simpl y too spoiled and unable to adapt.
ellauri375.html on line 771: On the other hand, you had the adventurers, the “give me a gun and send me to the frontline!” guys showing up in the Ukrainian Legion. Vetting procedures were minimal and some peopl e slipped through the process who shouldn't have been accepted (they were often lying about their military experience). These folks soon had to learn that the Ukrainians do not tolerate any “cowboys”, braggarts, or impostors.
ellauri375.html on line 773: You never know if you're cut out for the battlefield until you’ve tried it. Some folks simpl y couldn't handle it and left. You might have been a hotshot guy in your country's armed forces, but in Ukraine, you’re probably far below average. Some peopl e here (especially the “I was Special Forces!” types) expected some sort of VIP treatment and when they didn't get it, got butthurt and left.
ellauri377.html on line 31: Lihan iloja play:none">Hurlumheitä
ellauri377.html on line 33: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a9/AlexGraffito.svg/292px-AlexGraffito.svg.png" />
ellauri377.html on line 91: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/a5/Mary_MagdaleneEgorov.jpg" />
ellauri377.html on line 157: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/d2/Lion-faced_deity.jpg" />
ellauri377.html on line 268: IS there s list of carnal sins in The Bible? How many items has it got? No there is not a compl ete list but galatians 5: 19-21 list the works of the flesh we know of. It says that the works of the flesh dont mix with the fruits of the spirit which is galatians 5: 23-28.
ellauri377.html on line 272: saxinnosten perusteella adultery, boredom, debauchery, depravity, filthy thoughts, fornication, idol-worship, illicit sex, immodesty, immoral, filthy, and indecent actions, immoral ways, impurity, indecency, indecent behavior, lasciviousness, lewdness, licentiousness, lustfulness, lustful pl easures, luxury, moral impurity, perversion, promiscuity, sensuality (total irresponsibility, lack of self-control), sexual immorality, shameful deeds, sorcery, uncleanness, whoredom.
ellauri377.html on line 291: (19) Now the works of the flesh are manifest.--It needs no elaborate disquisition to show what is meant by fulfilling the lust of the flesh. (PST: FUCKING!) The effects which the flesh produces are pl ain and obvious enough. (UNWANTED PREGNANCIES!) The catalogue which follows is not drawn up on any exact scientific principl e, but divides itself roughly under four heads: (1) sins of sensuality; (2) sins of superstition; (3) sins of temper; (4) excesses.
ellauri377.html on line 298: Verse 19. - Now the works of the flesh are manifest (φανερὰ δέ ἐστι τὰ ἔργα τῆς σαρκός). The apostle's purpose is here altogether one of practical exhortation. Having in ver. 13 emphatically warned the Galatians against making their emancipation from the Mosaic Law an occasion for the flesh, and in ver. 16 affirmed the incompatibility of a spiritual walk with the fulfilment of the desire of the flesh, he now specifies sampl es of the vices, whether in outward conduct or in inward feeling, in which the working of the flesh is apparent, as if cautioning them; adducing just those into which the Galatian converts would naturally be most in danger of falling. Both in the list which he gives them of sins, and in that of Christian graces, he is careful to note those relative to their Church life as well as those bearing upon their personal private life.
ellauri377.html on line 317: Strong's 2041: From a primary ergo; toil; by impl ication, an act.
ellauri377.html on line 380: Jos enkeli on ruumiiton, ovatko ihmisten enkelihavainnot, joista Raamatussakin on useampia kertomuksia, unta tai pelkkää mielikuvitusta? Tuomas Akvinolaisen mukaan eivät ole. Enkeli nimittäin voi halutessaan ottaa itselleen ruumiin. Tuo ruumis saattaa näyttää ihmisen kaltaiselta ja toimiakin kuin ihminen, kuten Vanhan testamentin Lootin luona Sodomassa vierailleet miehet, joiden kerrotaan aterioineen Lootin kotona. Silti se ei ole biologinen organismi, sillä se ei voi käydä paskalla, koska siltä puuttuu takapuoli. Pikemminkin se muistuttaa Blade Runner -elokuvan repl ikantteja, ihmisen kaltaisia biologisia robotteja. Etupuoli oli kunnossa vain Gabrielilla, joka siitti Jeesuxen.
ellauri377.html on line 413: VIDEO
ellauri377.html on line 475: Parapl exiasta. "Kesken tien ensimmäinen hallitsija on nimeltään Parapl ēx, naisen muotoinen hallitsija, jonka hiukset ulottuvat hänen jalkoihinsa ja jonka vallan alla seisoo viisi ja kaksikymmentä arkkidemonia, jotka hallitsevat monia muita demoneja. ovat ne demonit, jotka menevät ihmisten sisään ja viettelevät heitä, raivoaen, kiroilemalla ja panettelemalla; ja ne ovat ne, jotka vievät sieluja täältä ja ihastuksissaan ja lähettävät heidät pimeän savunsa ja pahojen rangaistusten kautta." Mökin kuistille ei laitettu runkmannin ehdottamaa pl exilasia.
ellauri377.html on line 489: Parapl ēxian rangaistukset."Siihen aikaan tämä valta, nimeltään Parapl ēx, yhdessä hänen allasa olevien demonien kanssa karkottaa pois väkivaltaisten, kiroajien ja panettelijoiden sielut ja lähettää heidät pimeän savun läpi ja tuhoaa heidät pahan tulensa kautta, Satakolmekymmentäkolme vuotta ja yhdeksän kuukautta he viettävät alueidensa kurituksissa, kun hän vaivaa heitä pahuutensa tulessa.
ellauri377.html on line 491: "Sitten kaikkien näiden aikojen jälkeen tapahtuu, kun pallo kääntyy ja pieni Sabaōth, Zeus, saapuu pallon ensimmäiseen æoniin, jota kutsutaan maailmassa Boubastiksen oinaaksi eli Aphroditen; [ja] kun hän [Boubastis] tulee pallon seitsemänteen taloon, toisin sanoen tasapainoon, silloin oikeiston ja vasemmiston välissä olevat verhot vetäytyvät sivuun, ja sieltä ne katsovat korkeudesta ulos. oikeistolaisista suuri Sabaōth, Hyvä; ja koko maailma ja koko sfääri [herästyy] ennen kuin hän on katsonut eteenpäin. Ja hän katselee alas Parapl exin alueita, niin että sen alueet hajoavat ja hukkuvat. Ja kaikki sielut, jotka ovat hänen rangaistuksissaan, viedään ja heitetään takaisin sfääriin uudelleen, koska ne ovat tuhonneet Parapl ēxin rangaistukset."
ellauri377.html on line 501: Tripl e-faced Hekate. Hän jatkoi puhettaan ja sanoi: "Kolmannen luokan nimi on Tripl e-faced Hekatē, ja sen alaisuudessa on seitsemänkaksikymmentä [arkki]demonia, ja juuri ne menevät ihmisten sisään ja viettelevät heidät vääriin valaisiin ja valoihin. valheita ja himoitsemaan sitä, mikä ei heille kuulu.
ellauri378.html on line 30: Schwerbelastungskörper play:none">Rapukarkkeja
ellauri378.html on line 44: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/63/Judgment_at_Nuremberg_%281961_film_poster%29.jpg/440px-Judgment_at_Nuremberg_%281961_film_poster%29.jpg" />
ellauri378.html on line 60: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b4/Franz_Schlegelberger.JPG/440px-Franz_Schlegelberger.JPG" />
ellauri378.html on line 62: Saksalainen puolustussyyttäjä Hans Rolfe väittää, että syytetyt eivät olleet ainoita, jotka auttoivat tai jättivät huomiotta natsihallinnon. Hän väittää, että Yhdysvallat on tehnyt yhtä pahoja tai pahempia tekoja kuin natsit, kuten Yhdysvaltain korkeimman oikeuden tuomarin Oliver Wendell Holmes Jr.:n tuki ensimmäisille eugeniikkakäytännöille; Saksan ja Vatikaanin Reichskonkordat vuodelta 1933, jota natsien hallitsema Saksan hallitus käytti impl isiittisenä varhaisena ulkomaisena tunnustuksena natsien johtajuudesta; Josif Stalinin osa vuoden 1939 natsien ja neuvostoliittojen välisessä sopimuksessa, joka poisti viimeisen suuren esteen Saksan hyökkäykseltä ja Länsi- Puolan miehittämiseltä ja aloitti toisen maailmansodan ; sekä Hiroshiman ja Nagasakin atomipommitukset sodan loppuvaiheessa elokuussa 1945.
ellauri378.html on line 96: VIDEO
ellauri378.html on line 130: Wealthier peopl e give a smaller percentage of their income to charity.
ellauri378.html on line 131: A feeling of competition and selfishness sets in with the acquisition of wealth or status. The wealthier we become, the more likely we are to erect boundaries between ourselves and others—for exampl e, by living in a bigger house with a fence around it. Not very likely if you are homeless or a university professor.
ellauri378.html on line 138: Rich peopl e are hard working and smart. Smart peopl e know how to find those moments more often than others. They usually accompl ish it by diversifying themselves. They travel. They spend lots of time visiting family. They expl ore nature and their inner self. They are social creatures that seek positive conversations with their peers and inferiors. They choose meaningful career paths that provide them the ability to accompl ish all the other aspects of their life that I mentioned above.
ellauri378.html on line 149: Presidentti Iohannikselle uskolliset dipl omaatit olisivat jo Washingtonissa valmistelemassa maata ja Turkki, jolla on USA:n jälkeen toiseksi suurin armeija NATOssa, olisi tavallisesti asioista perillä olevien lähteiden mukaan Romanian puolella. Jos Rutte ei kuitenkaan vetäytyisi ehdokkuudestaan, on vaikea uskoa, että Yhdysvallat ja muut suurvallat vetäisivät tukensa hänelle julkisesti ilmoitettuaan tukensa.
ellauri378.html on line 173: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Russia_Dagestan_locator_map.svg/800px-Russia_Dagestan_locator_map.svg.png" />
ellauri378.html on line 207: VIDEO
ellauri378.html on line 213: Wait! we Westerners rather think that Russians should stop using, abusing and killing Ukrainians! So, Russian fanboy and propagandist, pl ease tells us; what is Russia actually doing in Ukraine? You insinuate that the West is to blame so let’s run with that shall we:
ellauri378.html on line 217: FACT: Ukraine isn’t a member of NATO or any Western alliance or organisation like the EU, for exampl e.
ellauri378.html on line 222: Up until fairly recently most peopl e didn’t consider Ukraine a particularly Western aligned country. It was a neutral state and in fact fairly Eastern and Russian aligned. But then we saw the gap in the traffic, and in we went!
ellauri378.html on line 224: Resistance continued after German capitulation, until on the 4th September 1945 a small group of German soldiers depl oyed on Bear Island to man a weather station surrendered to Norwegian seal hunters.
ellauri378.html on line 326: Tämä artikkeli on osa Peopl e from the Bible -sarjaamme, joka sisältää tunnetuimmat historialliset nimet ja hahmot Raamatusta. Olemme koonneet nämä artikkelit auttaaksemme sinua tutkimaan niitä, jotka Jumala valitsi asettaa meille esimerkkeinä Sanassaan. Vahvistakoon heidän elämänsä ja vaellus Jumalan kanssa uskoasi ja rohkaiskoon sieluasi. Eikä siinä kaikki!
ellauri378.html on line 425: Although Israel eliminated the main Hamas command structure in central and northern Gaza, pockets of “guerrilla” resistance remained. According to the publication's sources among senior officials, 4 of the 24 Hamas "battalions" remained "compl etely intact" after fleeing to Rafah, where the IDF is preparing to invade. At the same time, Israel doubts the possibility of finding and destroying the remaining terrorists, since the United States has “turned its back on Israel,” although a month ago Tel Aviv had confidence that they'd have its back.
ellauri378.html on line 432: VIDEO
ellauri378.html on line 611: VIDEO
ellauri378.html on line 621: ploads/legacy/assets.rbl.ms/17275014/origin.jpg?auto=webp&optimize=high&quality=70&width=568&dpr=3" />
ellauri378.html on line 628: ploads/legacy/assets.rbl.ms/17289768/origin.jpg?auto=webp&optimize=high&quality=70&width=1080" />
ellauri378.html on line 635: ploads/2020/04/05/Screen-Shot-2024-04-05-at-3.49.28-PM.png?auto=webp&optimize=high&crop=16:9,smart&auto=webp&optimize=high&quality=70&width=1080" width="90%" />
ellauri378.html on line 647: Black Ops takes pl ace between 1961 and 1968 during both the Cold War and the Vietnam War, 16 years to 23 years after the events of World War 3. It portrays a secret history of black operations carried out behind enemy lines by the CIA. Missions take pl ace in various countries around the globe, including Cuba, the Soviet Union, the United States, South Vietnam, China, British Hong Kong, Canada, and Laos. The single-pl ayer campaign revolves around the CIA's attempts to stop Soviet sleeper agents embedded in the US, to be activated via broadcasts from a numbers station, depl oying an experimental nerve agent and chemical weapon known as "Nova 6".
ellauri378.html on line 655: Maxis is revealed to have become a sentient artificial intelligence living within the systems of Griffin Station, and he guides his daughter and the three soldiers to launch three missiles at the Earth. This severs Richtofen's link with the Aether, but the launch results in the catastrophic destruction of the Earth while still leaving Richtofen in control of the undead. Tinkering with the unstable Higg's particle can cause collapse of the known universe that expands with the velocity of light. To accompl ish this, an even bigger El José will be built. No tehkäähän nyt sekin vielä vitun risto-oravat. Apinat.
ellauri378.html on line 657: The Daily Telegraph praised Black Ops as its "meaty kick of the guns, the blistering pace of the action and the sterling soundtrack of expl osions, gunshots and whistling bullets all serve to quicken the pl ayer's pulse and tighten their grip on the controller", and how the game is "compensated for by the nail-shredding tension and creepy atmosphere".
ellauri378.html on line 658: At the 14th Annual Interactive Achievement Awards (now known as the D.I.C.E. Awards), Call of Duty: Black Ops was nominated for "Game of the Year", "Action Game of the Year", "Outstanding Achievement in Animation", "Outstanding Achievement in Online Gamepl ay", and "Outstanding Achievement in Visual Engineering".
ellauri378.html on line 659: Reviewers also noted that the game was buggy and had "a number of frustrating problems", including a lag in multipl ayer modes which for some pl ayers rendered the game almost "unpl ayable".
ellauri381.html on line 38: Puskaryssiä play:none">Pomilointia
ellauri381.html on line 39: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/8/8a/Puss_in_Boots_from_Shrek.png" width="100%" />
ellauri381.html on line 98: Syyskuussa 2022 Otto Schmidtin mukaan nimetty katu Dniprossa nimettiin uudelleen Banderan kunniaksi; Tämä katu oli alun perin ollut Gymnasium Street, kunnes neuvostoviranomaiset nimesivät sen uudelleen Otto Schmidt Streetiksi erinomaisen venäläisen tiedemiehen ja maantieteilijän, arktisen alueen tutkijan Otto Julievich Schmidtin (1891-1956) kunniaksi vuonna 1934. Joulukuussa 2022 äskettäin vapautettu Iziumin kaupunki päätti nimetä Pushkin Streetin uudelleen Stepana Bandera Streetiksi. 22 muuta katua nimettiin uudelleen. Deutsche Welle, reporting in 2014, said that most of the peopl e in Izium were ethnic Ukrainians, but the Russian language was the most common language of communication on the streets. On April 17, 2023, Izium formed a Sister City partnership with Greenwich, Connecticut, USA.
ellauri381.html on line 100: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1a/Polovtsian_babas_on_Mount_Kremenets_after_Russian_shelling_%2802%29.jpg/1920px-Polovtsian_babas_on_Mount_Kremenets_after_Russian_shelling_%2802%29.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri381.html on line 107: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f0/The_Pechenegs_defeating_the_Rus%2C_from_the_Skyllitzes_Matritensis%2C_fol._173r%2C_%28Public_Domain%29_via_Creative_Commons.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri381.html on line 115: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/2e/Cumania_%281200%29_eng.png" width="70%" />
ellauri381.html on line 141: The Banderovites had a compl icated relationship with the German occupying forces, but their actions were always determined by the fact that their main enemy was the USSR. This approach was driven by the ideology of Ukrainian nationalism, according to which the main opponent of Ukrainians are “Moskali” (Muscovites) - that is, Russians, as well as Poles and Jews.
ellauri381.html on line 172: Today, Ukraine is reaping the fruits of this school of education and information, as many of the peopl e pushing the “Ukrainian” agenda are under 30 years old, even though their parents do not emphasize any pronounced Ukrainian identity.
ellauri381.html on line 194: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dc/Gherman_Solovetski.jpg/375px-Gherman_Solovetski.jpg" />
ellauri381.html on line 373: Simpl y – you knew how to wait!
ellauri381.html on line 383: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/ru/1/10/Zhdi_menya_poster.jpg" />
ellauri381.html on line 505: Stepl ag (Ekibastuzin leiri)
ellauri381.html on line 507: Karagandan alueen syyttäjänviraston tietokeskuksesta löydetty vangin kortti A.I. Solženitsyn todistaa, että 18. elokuuta 1950 Aleksanteri Isajevitš vietiin Karagandaan ja määrättiin samana päivänä Neuvostoliiton sisäasiainministeriön Stepl agin 9. leiriosastolle, joka oli osa Irtyshuglestroy-säätiötä Ekibastuz Pavlodarin kaupungin alueella, ja siksi sillä oli toinen nimi: Ekibastuzin leiri. Ekibastuz sijaitsee laajan Pavlodarin hiilikentän alueella Kazakhstanissa. Kazakhstanissa on paljon potaskaa.
ellauri381.html on line 581: ploads/2022/03/GettyImages-1233499794-scaled.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri381.html on line 591: It will produce the first ever English translations of the author’s autobiography, “The Little Grain,” and the remaining volumes of his opus, “The Red Wheel.” According to Joseph Dresen of the Kennan Institute, the first translations will be compl eted in late 2015.
ellauri381.html on line 593: For much of the late 1970s and 1980s, Solzhenitsyn was portrayed in the Western media as a cranky has-been. "Partly it was his fault,” Ignat answers. “His strident political tone was not compatible with typical Western discourse. Then peopl e saw the beard and, well, two pl us two equals Old Testament prophet. But that was a result of the urgency of the times he was living in. Peopl e did not understand the world he had come from. Where he came from good manners were not a common currency.”
ellauri381.html on line 595: Solzhenitsyn’s 1978 Harvard University commencement address is the perfect exampl e of the disconnect between his uncompromising attitude and the expectations of his audience. In keeping with his dissident roots, the author spoke vehemently – through a translator – against what he saw as the shortcomings of the Western world.
ellauri381.html on line 623: Yhdysvaltain täysivaltaisen ministerin nimen osallisuus Kostovia vastaan esitettyyn syytteeseen johti dipl omaattiseen skandaaliin, jonka seurauksena 20. helmikuuta 1950 Yhdysvaltojen ja Bulgarian dipl omaattisuhteet katkesivat lähes vuosikymmeneksi.
ellauri381.html on line 626: 19. tammikuuta 1950 Bulgaria julisti Heathin persona non grataksi ja katkaisi dipl omaattisuhteet Yhdysvaltoihin 20. helmikuuta. Yhdysvallat ilmoitti dipl omaattisuhteiden keskeyttämisestä Bulgarian kanssa seuraavana päivänä, ja Heath lähti maasta 24. helmikuuta. Heath ja 43 Yhdysvaltain lähetystön jäsentä nousivat Orient Expressiin 23. helmikuuta ja lähtivät Turkkiin. Bulgarian hallitus tuomitsi suhteiden katkeamisen uudeksi vaiheeksi "amerikkalaisten imperialistien taistelussa rauhan ja demokratian eturintamaa vastaan". Vuosikymmen myöhemmin Haastatteluissaan amerikkalaisten toimittajien kanssa diktaattori Zhivkov kiisti, että Bulgaria olisi Neuvostoliiton nukkevaltio . "Nukke? Ei totta!" Zhivkov sanoi Edwin Gritzille Washington Postista "Suuri panettelu. Neuvostoliitto auttaa meitä rakentamaan itsenäistä taloutta."
ellauri381.html on line 628: Relations between the U.S. and Bulgaria had gone from merely chilly to bitterly cold. In Sofia, U.S. Minister Donald Heath was harassed and insulted by Bulgarian officials. They demanded his recall. When Washington protested, it got only smiling evasions from Bulgarian Chargé d'Affaires Peter Voutov in Washington, sullen silence from Sofia. Last week, his patience exhausted, Secretary of State Dean Acheson broke off dipl omatic relations with Russia's Balkan satellite (which was a Nazi satellite before that).
ellauri381.html on line 662: Toinen tarina on tarina petturi Innokenty Volodinista. Ulkomaille matkustava dipl omaatti, Neuvostoliiton älymystön eliitin edustaja, yrittää välittää Yhdysvaltain suurlähetystölle tietoja Neuvostoliiton tiedusteluagentin yrityksestä seurata yhdysvaltalaisten tutkijoiden kehitystä atomipommin tuotannon alalla.
ellauri381.html on line 665: ple/profile-1539448339-yPTImdlSzKQxavmodbxkcvcTCxg.jpg?tr=h-550,w-333,q-60&version=2" height="300px" />
ellauri381.html on line 678: Yleisö puhkesi suunnattoman pitkiin apl odeihin, kun säveltäjä Kaija Saariahon, kirjailija Sofi Oksasen ja dramaturgi-kääntäjä Aleksi Barrièren uutuusooppera Innocence sai viimein Suomen ensi-iltansa Kansallisoopperassa perjantaina 21.10.2022. Ooppera käsittelee väkivallan virkistävää vaikutusta yhteiskuntaan, perheisiin ja ihmisten elämään kaiken kaikkiaan.
ellauri382.html on line 38: Itätyttöjä play:none">Suunsoittoa
ellauri382.html on line 53: ploads/2023/12/assetsimages9482b0ef-ace9-4822-94a5-9ffade940e0e.jpg" >
ellauri382.html on line 236: Me olemme lopultakin täysin merkityksettömiä väkivaltaisen ja armottoman olemassaolon taistelun sekä sokean, mielettömän sattuman tuottamia sieluttomia ja merkityksettömiä biorobotteja pienellä mitättömällä ja merkityksettömällä pl aneetalla, joka kiertää mitätöntä ja merkityksetöntä G-spektriluokan tähteä jossain kaukana keskikokoisen galaksin reunalla, ja sen keskustassa on valtava musta aukko. Lopulta se tähti kuolee ja tuhoaa meidät kuollessaan. Ja lopulta koko itse universumikin tuhoutuu.
ellauri382.html on line 254: ploads/2020/01/zinaida-portnova-og.jpg" />
ellauri382.html on line 272: Zinaida on kompl isoitu keissi eettiseltä kannalta:
ellauri382.html on line 292: ploads/2019/09/deportados-22-img-2.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri382.html on line 352: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8f/Rzhev_salient_1941-1942.JPG/600px-Rzhev_salient_1941-1942.JPG" width="50%" />
ellauri382.html on line 355: The baddest man on the pl anet
ellauri382.html on line 357: ploads/2022/08/goggins2-1.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri382.html on line 358: Aika parru pl aneetan pahimmalla pikkumiehellä. Pysyyköhän kovana...
ellauri382.html on line 360: Meet the baddest man on the pl anet! Retired Chief Petty Officer David Goggins is the only person to ever compl ete US Army Ranger School, US Air Force Tactical Control Party Training, and US Navy Seal Training. Individually, each of these training programs are nearly impossible to compl ete. He not only compl eted the training, but served honorably, compl eting numerous combat missions in Afghanistan in each capacity, killing a lot of foreigners. Petty officers are U.S. Army's middle class which prevents the rank and file from lashing out on the officers. That's democracy. Middle class dreams about getting to the top and the rubble dreams about rising to middle class, pitelemään mahtavaa parrua.
ellauri382.html on line 362: David Goggins is an American hero and we may never know the true extent of all he has done for our country. He is a Guinness World Record holder and widely regarded as “the baddest man on the pl anet”. David Goggins (born February 17, 1975) is an American retired United States Navy Seal. He is also an ultramarathon runner, ultra-distance cyclist, triathlete, ultra-motivational speaker, author of two conflicting memoirs, and was abducted into the International Sports Hall of Fame for his achievements in sport. Goggins was also awarded the VFW Americanism award in 2018 for his service in the United States Armed Forces.
ellauri382.html on line 367: I’m physically smaller than most guys in weight and height. How do I stop feeling anxiety around peopl e?
ellauri382.html on line 369: Goggins was born on February 17, 1975, to Trunnis and Jackie Goggins. In 1981, he lived in Williamsville, New York, on a street called Paradise Road (same as Donald Duck!) with his parents and brother, Trunnis Jr. While Goggins's neighborhood held "model citizens consisting of white peopl e," he describes his colorful home experience as "hell on Earth." Goggins's father owned the roller skating rink Skateland, located in East Buffalo, New York. At age six, Goggins often worked the night shift at Skateland alongside his family, lining up roller skates. Goggins’s mother left his father due to abuse and eventually moved herself and her children to live with Goggins's grandparents in Brazil, Indiana. Goggins enrolled in second grade at a small Catholic school and made First and Second Communion but failed the Third. His brother, Trunnis Jr., returned to Buffalo to live with their father.
ellauri382.html on line 371: When Goggins enrolled in the third grade, he was diagnosed with a learning disability due to the lack of schooling. He also found it difficult to learn as he was suffering from toxic stress because of the child abuse that he suffered during his early years in Buffalo, New York. Because of the stress, he developed a stutter. Goggins expl ains h-ho-how he was c-co-constantly in a f-fight-or-flight response with social anxiety because of his s-st-stuttering. In school, Goggins was subjected to racism and the K-Ku-Klux Klan held a local presence at the time in Brazil and Indiana. Goggins recalls he once found "Niger [sic] we're gonna kill you" on his Spanish notebook. At 16, a better informed student spray painted "nigger" on the door of Goggins's car.
ellauri382.html on line 457: Procrastination in the compl etion of imposed tasks ✔
ellauri382.html on line 511: We feel isolated, different from other peopl e.
ellauri382.html on line 515: We are attracted to peopl e who are rarely there emotionally for us.
ellauri382.html on line 547: Inability to relax or have pl easure in life
ellauri382.html on line 588: Gas Light is a 1938 thriller pl ay, set in 1880s London, written by the British novelist and pl aywright Patrick Hamilton. Hamilton´s pl ay is a dark tale of a marriage based on deceit and trickery, and a husband committed to driving his wife insane in order to steal from her.
ellauri382.html on line 590: Gas Light was written during a 8-year dark period in Hamilton´s life. Six years prior to the pl ay Hamilton was hit by a drunk driver and dragged through the streets of London, leaving him with a limp, a paralysed arm, and a disfigured face. Two years later, Hamilton´s mother took her own life.
ellauri382.html on line 592: The pl ay was adapted to the big screen as two films, both entitled Gaslight—a 1940 British film, and a 1944 American film directed by George Cukor, also known as The Murder in Thornton Square in the UK. Both films are considered classics in their respective countries of origin, and are generally equally critically acclaimed. The pl ay is set in fog-bound London in 1880, hence the name. The term "gaslighting" does not appear in any of the stagepl ays or screenpl ays and is inspired by the film´s title "Gaslight". The pl ay has a happy end by the way.
ellauri382.html on line 717: VIDEO
ellauri382.html on line 736: VIDEO
ellauri382.html on line 765: Mifi ozhenj pl okhije
ellauri382.html on line 767: Myytit ovat vaarallisia, otshenj pl okhije. Kiovassa sijaitsevan 62 metriä korkean Äiti synnyinmaa -veistoksen kilvestä poistettiin elokuussa 2023 Neuvostoliiton symbolit sirppi ja vasara. Tilalle patiin Ukrainan kolmikärkitunnus. Yksi suurimmista myyteistä liittyy Kiovan Rusiin. Rus käännetään usein virheellisesti Venäjäksi, vaikka se liittyy enemmän Ukrainaan. Kiovan Rus oli viikinkien yli tuhat vuotta sitten perustama valtio, joka omaksui kristinuskon Bysantista ja kävi kauppaa pitkin jokireittejä. Sen nimi kuuuluisi oikeasti olla Kiovan Ruozi. Paikalliset surmasivat ensimmäisen ruhtinaan Ihorin eli Ingvarin vuonna 945, koska tämä keräsi heiltä veroja. Hänen leskensä Helga eli Olga palautti heimot valtaansa. Ukrainalaiset muodostivat valtakunnan ytimen, ja heillä on vahvat perustelut väittää olevansa entisen Kiovan Ruozin jatkajia.”
ellauri383.html on line 38: Poena Cullei play:none">Mölinää
ellauri383.html on line 55: This 98-year-old woman walked 10 km with a cane to bring this spl inter of wood to the Ukrainian-controlled territory from the settlement of Ocheretyne in Donetsk region, captured by Russia last week. Because she didn’t want to leave a perfectly good spl inter to the Russian occupiers.
ellauri383.html on line 61: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/d4/Friedrich_duerrenmatt_19890427.jpg" />
ellauri383.html on line 129:
ellauri383.html on line 131: ploads/2024/04/Folklistan-Sara-Jan-906x1024.png" width="90%"/>
ellauri383.html on line 166: ploads/2024/04/24-03-21_Skyttedal_studio-51-scaled.jpg" width="90%"/>
ellauri383.html on line 210: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f1/Le_livre_des_%C3%A9checs_amoureux_moralis%C3%A9s_-_Saturn%2C_Uran.jpg" />
ellauri383.html on line 247: The annexation of Crimea by the Russian Federation took pl ace in the aftermath of the 2014 Ukrainian revolution. On 22–23 February, Russian President Vladimir Putin convened an all-night meeting with security services chiefs to discuss pullout of deposed President, Viktor Yanukovych, and at the end of that meeting Putin remarked that "we must start working on returning Crimea to Russia.". Russia sent in soldiers on February 27, 2014. Crimea held a referendum. According to official Russian and Crimean sources 95% voted to reunite with Russia. The legitimacy of the referendum has been questioned by the west---international community.
ellauri383.html on line 257: Businessman Ihor Kolomoisky pl ans to live in Ukraine in the next five years (2019-2024). Until recently, he lived in Israel, where he moved from Switzerland. The last time he was in Ukraine was June 2017. "I've decided to live in Ukraine for the next five years. For I hope for the rule of law in the country," he told the investigative TV program Schemes program of the Radio Free Europe / Radio Liberty. Kolomoisky denies that his stay in Ukraine is connected with the 2019 election of Volodymyr Zelensky as president. "It has nothing to do with that. I've come here and pl an to be here for family reasons. My son is to ink a contract with a basketball club of Ukraine," he said.
ellauri383.html on line 261: "They will take on the responsibility for handling certain issues. For exampl e, Victor [Mr. Pinchuk] will provide 24 families of our captured sailors with apartments and continue solving issues of social assistance for all military personnel. This is our agreement," Zelensky said at a meeting with business representatives in Kyiv on June 20, according to the TV news service TSN.
ellauri383.html on line 262: He also announced agreements with Rinat [Mr. Akhmetov] on the abolition of the Rotterdam pl us formula, a method of forming a price for coal in power generation by thermal power pl ants in Ukraine. It was introduced in March 2016 and became effective in May 2016. Rinat is also ready to invest in local medicine and roads. Zelensky said that the recent purchase of 200 ambulances for Ukrainian hospitals was the first result of such a deal.
ellauri383.html on line 266: The main opponents of the formula for determining the market price of coal were large energy-intensive enterprises - mainly ferroalloy and electrometallurgical enterprises, which belong to oligarchs Igor Kolomoisky and Viktor Pinchuk. The object of criticism and media attacks was the DTEK holding, the largest coal producer and operator the majority of thermal power pl ants. TV channels controlled by Kolomoisky and Pinchuk accused DTEK of receiving super-profits. Since the owner of 100% of DTEK shares is entrepreneur Rinat Akhmetov, criticism was also directed at him.
ellauri383.html on line 268: What happened was that "the real circumstances" introduced some "revisions". Due to the war in Donbas, all the anthracite mines suppl ying coal to a number of thermal power pl ants were in the occupied territory of Ukraine. The need to look for new thermal power suppl y sources became more acute.
ellauri383.html on line 269: Why was the country left unprepared to the energy crisis? Why was there no alternative option other than coal suppl y from the occupied territory of Ukraine? Only Renat and the other two oligarchs know, but they won't tell.
ellauri383.html on line 271: State-owned Public JSC started modernization of two power units of Trypilska thermal power pl ant, their conversion from anthracite to gas group of coal. DTEK has similar pl ans for Prydniprovska thermal power pl ant. There is also an agreement on suppl y of 2 million tons of coal to Ukraine from the USA. After “Rotterdam+” formula was introduced, big power-producing companies won, started to make ultrahigh revenues. DTEK became 10x richer overnight. More than UAH 10 billion was collected from the consumers, which instead of being invested in the country’s energy safety, was simpl y pocketed. The oligarch businessmen got astronomical profits. “Rotterdam+” is nothing but a corruption scheme,” concluded the expert.
ellauri383.html on line 274: Manspl aining Uru-Anna
ellauri383.html on line 280: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5d/Orion_constellation_map.png/520px-Orion_constellation_map.png" />
ellauri383.html on line 306: Samankaltaisella sanalla mazalot (מַּזָּלוֹת) kirjassa 2 Kings voi olla erilainen merkitys, ja se käännetään usein eri tavalla, koska tämän sanan yhteys pl aneetoihin tai horoskooppiin on yleisempi (kabbalistisessa astrologiassa mazalotia käytettiin myös astrologiassa kenraali, ja sana saattaa liittyä assyrialaiseen manzaltu, "asema").
ellauri383.html on line 322: To the choirmaster: according to The Gittith. A Psalm of David. O Lord, our Lord, how majestic is your name in all the earth! You have set your glory above the heavens. Out of the mouth of babies and infants, you have established strength because of your foes, to still the enemy and the avenger. When I look at your heavens, the work of your fingers, the moon and the stars, which you have set in pl ace, what is man that you are mindful of him, and the son of man that you care for him? Yet you have made him a little lower than the heavenly beings and crowned him with glory and honor....
ellauri383.html on line 328: When I look at your heavens, the work of your fingers, the moon and the stars, which you have set in pl ace,
ellauri383.html on line 340: And beware lest you raise your eyes to heaven, and when you see the sun and the moon and the stars, all the host of heaven, you be drawn away and bow down to them and serve them, things that the Lord your God has allotted to all the peopl es under the whole heaven.
ellauri383.html on line 355: For I know the pl ans I have for you, declares the Lord, pl ans for welfare and not for evil, to give you a future and a hope.
ellauri383.html on line 394: But understand this, that in the last days there will come times of difficulty. For peopl e will be lovers of self, lovers of money, proud, arrogant, abusive, disobedient to their parents, ungrateful, unholy, heartless, unappeasable, slanderous, without self-control, brutal, not loving good, treacherous, reckless, swollen with conceit, lovers of pl easure rather than lovers of God, having the appearance of godliness, but denying its power. Avoid such peopl e....
ellauri383.html on line 397: Anyone who does not love pl easure does not know God, because God is love.
ellauri383.html on line 400: The revelation of Jesus Christ, which God gave him to show to his servants the things that must soon take pl ace. He made it known by sending his angel to his servant John, who bore witness to the word of God and to the testimony of Jesus Christ, even to all that he saw. Blessed is the one who reads aloud the words of this prophecy, and blessed are those who hear, and who keep what is written in it, for the time is near. John to the seven churches that are in Asia: Grace to you and peace from him who is and who was and who is to come, and from the seven spirits who are before his throne, and from Jesus Christ the faithful witness, the firstborn of the dead, and the ruler of kings on earth. To him who loves us and has freed us from our sins by his blood...
ellauri383.html on line 412: On the third day there was a wedding at Cana in Galilee, and the mother of Jesus was there. Jesus also was invited to the wedding with his discipl es. When the wine ran out, the mother of Jesus said to him, “They have no wine.” And Jesus said to her, “Woman, what does this have to do with me? My hour has not yet come.” His mother said to the servants, “Do whatever he tells you.”...
ellauri383.html on line 421: And I saw no templ e in the city, for its templ e is the Lord God the Almighty and the Lamb with her big middle armpit.
ellauri383.html on line 442: Yet you have still a few names in Sardis, peopl e who have not soiled their garments, and they will walk with me in white, for they are worthy.
ellauri383.html on line 445: Do not be anxious about anything, but in everything by prayer and suppl ication with thanksgiving let your requests be made known to God.
ellauri383.html on line 470: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/63/Orion_from_Uranographia_by_Johann_Elert_Bode.jpg/440px-Orion_from_Uranographia_by_Johann_Elert_Bode.jpg" />
ellauri383.html on line 485: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4d/Orion_3008_huge.jpg/440px-Orion_3008_huge.jpg" />
ellauri383.html on line 503: Orionin vasen olkapää on merkitty Orionin gammalla, joka tunnetaan nimellä Bellatrix, latinankielinen nimi, joka tarkoittaa "naissoturia". Metsästäjän oikeaa polvea merkitsevä tähti, Orionin Kappa, on nimeltään Saiph. Tämä nimi tulee arabian kielen sanasta "miekka", ja se on selkeästi liitetty väärin. (Arabit ei osaa mitään kunnolla.) Kolme vyön muodostavaa tähteä - Zeta, Epsilon ja Delta - ovat nimeltään Alnitak, Alnilam ja Mintaka. Alnitak ja Mintaka tulevat arabian sanoista, jotka tarkoittaa "vyötä" ja "tuppea (lat. vagina)". Alnilam tulee myös arabiasta ja tarkoittaa "helminauhaa", toinen viittaus Orionin vyöhön. Manspl ainingia taas, on syytä epäillä.
ellauri383.html on line 506: ploads/2020/01/40cba2_0bb69645c8ae4017a20bfb9707daa08fmv2.png" />
ellauri383.html on line 512: Do the constellations of stars in the heavens tell more of a story than we dare to think? Is the movement of the Pole star and the change in magnetic north symbolic of a coming change in the focus of the cosmos on the manifestation or disclosure of the true peopl e of God?
ellauri383.html on line 514: Can it be a coincidence that the center of the earth is inexorably moving from Canada toward Russia just now that WW3 is about to start? Is Putin the next homecoming of Christ? Are Russians the next peopl e elected by Mr. Lord?
ellauri383.html on line 519: Lotsa peopl e in Trininad used to hear The Voice of God, V.S. Naipaul tells. One of them even let himself be tied to a balsa Cross but got pissed when peopl e began to throw at him largish stones. Ei jumalauta nyt loppu hei! Laama sabakhthaani! In the previous Gem I opened up the topic of hearing God’s Voice and I gave you the list of guys to whom God had spoken to in our Jakarta and Sysmä based Cell Groups over the years. But how do I know whether It Is God or me? Realize there are times when God Himself breaks the rules. He does that. He is not at all a God who is stuck in his own silly old rules! That is when we may well grasp the wrong end of His humongous stick. That could spell the end of our intimacy with His nugget...
ellauri383.html on line 580: Paxun baltin näköinen lippispäinen persu yrittää hikisesti perustella äiti- ja isälinjoilla ja hapl otyypeillä etteivät suomalaiset tulleetkaan Volgan mutkasta vaan peräti - lännestä! No niinpä tietysti.
ellauri383.html on line 590: Suomenmaa on suomalainen verkkolehti ja Suomen Keskustan pää-äänenkannattaja, joka perustettiin vuonna 1908 nimellä Maakansa. Se oli nimenä vuoteen 1965, lukuun ottamatta vuosia 1942–1945, jolloin nimenä oli Karjalan sanomat. Suomenmaa julkisti mobiilisovelluksen Android- ja Appl e-laitteille vuonna 2017 ja ilmestyy vuodesta 2024 ainoastaan verkkolehtenä. Nyt on Suomenmaa vallan hiljennyt, sivusto on kaatunut. Putinistien kybersotaa sekin varmasti.
ellauri384.html on line 38: ÖBAUT play:none">Hölinää
ellauri384.html on line 181: VIDEO
ellauri384.html on line 199: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b0/Rembrandt_-_Aristotle_with_a_Bust_of_Homer_-_WGA19232.jpg/600px-Rembrandt_-_Aristotle_with_a_Bust_of_Homer_-_WGA19232.jpg" />
ellauri384.html on line 212: Why do some peopl e (not) believe in heaven and hell?
ellauri384.html on line 216: For me, the reason is because those things are fundamentally hard to believe. If I told you that I had a unicorn friend named Gary, and that Gary had created the universe, and that he was my own personal special friend, and Gary loved me, and Gary was going to take me and everybody I care about to a magic kingdom in the clouds called “Sallbach” where everybody gets a flying pony, but if you don’t love Gary and accept him as your best, most special friend, then he’s going to send you to a pl ace called “Mopl ach” where you will be drowned in molasses, not only would have have a hard time believing in Sallbach and Mopl ach…
ellauri384.html on line 220: The ski resort of Sallbach is a traditional Austrian village with beautiful views. ... The lifts from Sallbach are very good mainly chairs and gondolas. Excellent stay in Sallbach(er hof). Review of Saalbacher Hof. Reviewed Aug 1, 2014. Everything was great. Just one elementary thing we suggest one can improve: The soap dispensors in the bathroom and WC are very difficult to get soap out of. One must nearly be a bodybuilder to be able to squeeze soap liquid out of them. Hope this is fixed till next time qwe come becuse we are sure to be back. Very nice rooms, friendly staff, excellent food and nice facilities. Lovely harp music. --- Aber im Mopl ach. Homber, Bodenart form Rommelsberge Vor dem Rommelsberg! Bockelswiesen die Bückelswiesen! Brern Wissen Breite Wiesen. Besenrren, grappig lachertje mop lach streek stunt. Brrm. Grrrrrh. 'Leuk mop.' Lach ik. Хорошая шутка. я смеюсь.
ellauri384.html on line 222: The concepts of “Heaven” and “Hell” are not only difficult for any rational person to believe, but they are not even well-defined. Even within the belief system of Christianity, there are multipl e descriptions of Heaven and Hell. Some subsets of Christendom don’t believe in hell. Those who read the Bible closely insist that “Hell” is only for traitorous angels. Everybody has a different idea of who is “definitely” going to be sent to one pl ace or another.
ellauri384.html on line 224: “Heaven” itself is a rather bizarre concept. Mark Twain underscored the lunacy of the idea in his short story “Captain Stormfield’s Visit To Heaven.” In that story and in “Letters From The Earth” he muses about how humans have invented a pl ace which is full of things that they never engaged in or cared about while on earth, and yet imagine themselves enjoying for all eternity. How many harp enthusiasts do YOU know personally? How many millenia would you enjoy singing the same song of praise over and over? How long would you delight in praying to the glory of God 24 hours a day? If you don’t do that now, why do you think you’re going to enjoy it when you’re dead?
ellauri384.html on line 229: Frankly, Hell sounds like a more tolerable pl ace, but even there, it’s full of absurdities. As Terry Pratchett pointed out, in order to cause someone physical pain, they have to have the attributes of a physical body, such as nerve endings. There’s little point in throwing a disembodied spirit into a lake of fire. They don’t have the hardware to FEEL anything. For that you need a body. So it would appear that the most prominent features of both Heaven and Hell is utterly crushing, eternal, pointless BOREDOM. Both pl aces would be eternal torture to the human mind.
ellauri384.html on line 235: ploads/2015/08/rembrandta-nochnoj-dozor-1642.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri384.html on line 372: Yksi tärkeimmistä menetelmistä, jonka Aristoteles pitää Korintin Perianterin ansioksi, on sellaisten pätevien miesten poistaminen, jotka voivat uhata tyrannin asemaa. Thrasybuloxen pitkät viljantähkät ja Australian tall poppy syndrome. In Australia and New Zealand, tall poppy syndrome refers to successful peopl e being criticised. This occurs when their peers believe they are too successful, or are bragging about their success. Intense scrutiny and criticism of such a person is termed as "cutting down the tall poppy". It has been described as being the by-product of the Australian and New Zealand nasty cultural value of egalitarianism. Kristina-tädin paukuttama Janteloven palaa mieleen (kz. albumia 16 .)
ellauri384.html on line 383: Kettunarttumainen Sharona eli Bitty Schram was fired during the third season of the Adrian Monk TV show owing to contract disagreements; apparently, she sought a bigger wage and the creators felt she was repl aceable. In the episode “Mr. Monk and the Red Herring,” she was repl aced by pregnant Natalie Teenager, who remained Monk’s assistant for the rest of the series. Dr. Stanley Kamel, who pl ayed Monk’s therapist Dr. Charles Kroger to Tony Shalhoub‘s neurotic Adrian Monk, died April 8, 2008, after suffering a heart attack at age 65.
ellauri384.html on line 385: After five seasons, 20 Emmy awards and pl enty of Jewish jokes, the hit series “The Marvelous Mrs. Maisel” will air its final episode on Friday. Lebanese Christian Adrian Monk pl ayed Midge's compl aining dad in the first season. The acclaimed Amazon Prime show by creator Amy Sherman-Palladino has enveloped viewers in a shimmering, candy-colored version of New York during the late 1950s and early 1960s — a world in which "money" meant Jewish money, “humor” meant Jewish humor and “culture” meant Jewish culture.
ellauri384.html on line 387: Jews have criticized the show’s casting: Its titular heroine, her parents Abe and Rose Weissman (Tony Shalhoub and Marin Hinkle) and Lenny Bruce (Luke Kirby) are all pl ayed by non-Jews. A debate over the casting of non-Jewish actors in Jewish roles has heated up in recent years, Comedian Sarah Silverman popularized the term “Jewface” to criticize the trend. Watching a gentile actor portraying, like, a Jew-y Jew is just — agh — feels, like, embarrassing and cringey, like a paleface blackened with shoeshine to pl ay a coon,” Silverman said on her podcast in 2021.
ellauri384.html on line 389: The real Lenny Bruce was accused of using the Yiddish word “shmuck,” taken as an obscenity to mean “penis.” He incorporated the charge into his standup, expl aining that the colloquial Jewish meaning of “schmuck” was “fool”, not "schlong" (meisseli). Driven to pennilessness by relentless prosecution, police harassment and blacklisting from most clubs across the country, he died of a morphine overdose in 1966 at 40 years old.
ellauri384.html on line 391: Weissmans were well-to-do professionals from Upper East side, Meisels filthy rich garment industrialists from Lower West. The 2010's Mrs. Maisel battles misogyny but takes little interest in other societal evils — including still-rampant antisemitism. Some critics have noted that she is oblivious to segregated facilities when she tours with Black singer Shy Baldwin, then nearly outs him as gay during her set. 'Mrs. Maisel’ takes pl ace in a supersaturated fantasy 1958 New York, one where antisemitism, racism, homophobia and even sexism are daily bread,” writer Rokhl Kafrissen said in 2018.
ellauri384.html on line 393: ploads/2024/04/Screenshot-2024-04-23-at-3.42.29-PM-1024x1017.png" width="100%" />
ellauri384.html on line 396: Se oli ehkä hetki, jolloin Tony Shalhoub, ei-juutalainen näyttelijä, joka näyttelee Midgen juutalaista isää, sanoi sanan "macher", jolloin tajusin, että jokin oli vialla. Aiemmin tänä vuonna Jared Leto pukeutui nenäproteesiin kuvatakseen israelilaista WeWorkin perustajaa Adam Neumania Appl eTV:n WeCrashedissa. Koomikko Sarah Silverman on nimenomaisesti tuominnut kuvat – kuten Leton ja Shalhoubin – joissa on joko proteettinen nenä tai stereotyyppiset eleet. Kuten hän äskettäin sanoi, "miksi meidän omaamme jatkuvasti rikotaan aikana, jolloin edustuksen tärkeys nähdään niin olennaisena ja keskeisenä?" Ennen vanhaan sai näytellä muita rotuja. "Kreikkalaisen" murteen koomikko Parkyakarkus radio-ohjelmassaan oli itse asiassa juutalainen mies (ja juutalaisen kirjailijan Albert Brooksin isä). Sellainen peli ei kyllä käy päinsä enää. Näytteleminen on poliittinen, niin, se on rasistinen teko. Die Rasse rein! Juutalaisena transumiehenä en saata enää näytellä vaikka puuta. Se oli mahdotonta hyväksyä silloin, eikä sitä voida hyväksyä nyt. Mediatilat, joiden maanisesta hallinnasta meitä syytetään, käyttävät edelleen nahattomia meisseleitä, suuria väärennettyjä neniöitä ja liioiteltuja aksentteja stereotypioina maailman rakentamisessa. Se on huolestuttavaa.
ellauri384.html on line 410: ploads/2019/12/12-4-19-shalhoub-4.jpg" width="100%"
ellauri384.html on line 469: Oiskoon tosiaankin niin että ruumiittoman sielun taivaaseen vilahtamisen ajatus oli vain Johixen pl atonisteilta kristinuskoon lanseeraamaa gnostilaista hapatusta, josta Nikeassa palattiin juudetyyppiseen kokokehon pelastuxeen? Ilmeisesti sitten mikään pierumainen sielu ei heti kuoltua livahdakaan mihkään maailmansielun yhteyteen vaan kalmo odottelee kärsivällisesti kuopassa että Jeppe kerkiää kiireiltään takaisin kaivamaan luut ylös luutarhasta. Samahan se sille on, ollen sillä aikaa vähintään yhtä tajuton kuin potilas virzakivileikkauxen aikana, eikä tajua ajan kulua. Toisaalta eikös sille sitten ole aika 1 ja sama tuleeko se pelastaja ylipäänsä toista kertaa noutamaan. Paremminhan siltä siellä loppuaika kuluu taju kankaalla kuin jos pitää ikuisuuxiin rämpytellä yläpilvessä harppukuorossa 24/7 tai 9-9-6 perse ummella ilman tupakkataukoja, Rembranttyylin munkkikahveista puhumattakaan.
ellauri386.html on line 38: Oman elämänsä Teppo play:none">Teppoilua
ellauri386.html on line 57: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/01/Trutovsky_004.jpg/340px-Trutovsky_004.jpg" />
ellauri386.html on line 68: Doston isä oli hirmu uskonnollinen, ja niin oli Fedjakin. Senpä takeen se ei lämmennyt Belinskyn vihervassariudesta. Belinsky suivaantui ja haukkui pydeen Doston kakkosteoxen (Tupl a) kehuttuaan ykkösen (Köyhät) kupl ixi.
ellauri386.html on line 71: Zaari antoi armoa ja lähetti "terroristin" Siperiaan 4 vuodexi pl us sotapalvelus.
ellauri386.html on line 78: Yksi Dostojevskin ystävistä, Miljukov, neuvoi häntä palkkaamaan sihteerin. Dostojevski otti yhteyttä pietarilaiseen pikakirjoittaja Pavel Olkhiniin, joka suositteli oppilastaan, kaksikymmentävuotiasta Anna Grigorjevna Snitkinaa. Hänen pikakirjoituksensa auttoi Dostojevskia saamaan Pelinpelaajan valmiiksi 30. lokakuuta 26 päivän työn jälkeen. Hänellä oli vaaleanruskeat, hieman punertavat hiukset, hän käytti hiushoitoainetta ja kampasi kaljuaan ahkerasti... hänen silmänsä olivat erilaiset: toinen oli tummanruskea, toisella pupilli niin iso, että et voinut nähdä sen väriä. Silmien omituisuus antoi Dostojevskille salaperäisen vaikutelman, ja ne näyttivät epäterveiltä. Kuukauden koeajan jälkeen 15. helmikuuta 1867 Dostojevski avioitui Snitkinan kanssa Trinity-katedraalissa Pietarissa. Rikos- ja rangaistuksesta ansaitsema 7000 rupl aa ei kattanut heidän velkojaan, joten Anna joutui myymään arvoesineensä.
ellauri386.html on line 201: Dmitri on miehen intohimoinen puoli, jonka huulilta valuu säkeitä Dostojevskin suosikkirunoista ja jonka taloudelliset murheet vastaavat kirjailijan, joka kerran kirjoitti veljelleen siitä, kuinka hänen vahtivuorollaan "rupl at ryyppäävät kuin ravut kaikkiin suuntiin. Ohjeita?"
ellauri386.html on line 216: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/45/Dostoyevsky_on_his_Bier%2C_Kramskoy.jpg/340px-Dostoyevsky_on_his_Bier%2C_Kramskoy.jpg" />
ellauri386.html on line 224: När Richard träffar Paula på Söderströms julkalas känns det som om alla bitarna faller på pl ats. Hon är hans livs kärlek och han är hennes, något som inte gällde för Philips första hustru och hans två barns mamma Sonja. Där satt pusselbitarna helt enkelt fel. Pjäserna var fully interlocking men figurerna matchade dåligt.
ellauri386.html on line 228: Jungfrustigen är en roman om sådant som börjar och tar slut, om passion som tar tid på sig och om att pl ötsligt befinna sig i stormens öga och fråga sig: Hur vill jag leva mitt liv? Vad har jag rätt till? Vad har jag råd till? Det är också en bok om det moderna samhällets nya familjeformer och den svåra konsten att leva under samma tak. Mycket intressant och originellt får man säja.
ellauri386.html on line 233: utkast till Den allvarsamma leken, framstår inte som någon slump. Jungfrustigens första halva lånar sig villigt till stilistiska jämförelser. Nog faller snön också över Richard när han om kvällen styr sina steg genom Paulas kvarter, och lika ymnigt som i Söderbergs vinterland. Så långt allt väl, eller mer än väl, men när sedan det dagliga livets pl ikter smyger sig på de förälskade tu tappar texten märkbart i laddning och anspråk. De bråkar om tvätten, om huruvida elvaåringar bör hänga med på konstutställning eller inte. Ingen av dem framstår som särskilt kul att vara med, och jag förstår att Teir i detta skede tar till det där med fläkten: ”Det var ett jäkla pipande, som tycktes bli högre för varje sekund.”
ellauri386.html on line 262: Vuonna 1595 Raleigh ja Laurence Kemys lähtivät etsimään El Doradoa ja saavuttivat Guyanaan asti, mikä tarjosi heille kohtuullisen määrän kultaa kotiin vietäväksi. Seuraavan vuoden aikana hän julkaisi Discovery of Guayanan. Vuoteen 1600 mennessä hän oli Jerseyn kuvernööri, mutta vain kolme vuotta myöhemmin Raleigh todettiin syylliseksi Espanjan kanssa Englannin vastaiseen juoniin, joka liittyi kuninkaan salamurhaan. Hänet pidettiin Lontoon Towerissa, jossa hän aloitti keskeneräisen The History of the World -teoksensa vuonna 1614. Hänet vapautettiin kaksi vuotta myöhemmin. Muutaman epäonnistuneen espanjalaisen tehtävän jälkeen Raleigh palasi kotiin Englantiin, missä hänet teloitettiin aiemman syytteen perusteella maanpetoksesta. Historiallisen panoksensa lisäksi hänen tunnetuimpia kirjallisia teoksiaan ovat Sir Philip Sidneyn epitafi, Even sellainen aika ja Sir Walter Raleigh pojalle. A. Latham tuotti runonsa vakiopainoksen vuonna 1951. Info toimittaa tiedot, kiitos.com ja Poetry for the Peopl e. Lue vähemmän, luulet enemmän.
ellauri386.html on line 350: A way of error, a templ e full of treason,
ellauri386.html on line 370: An idle boy that sleeps in pl easure's lap,
ellauri386.html on line 389: What is our life? A pl ay of passion,
ellauri386.html on line 396: Are like drawn curtains when the pl ay is done.
ellauri386.html on line 397: Thus march we, pl aying, to our latest rest,
ellauri386.html on line 400: Analysis (ai): This poem expl ores the transient nature of human life through a theatrical metaphor. It compares life to a pl ay, with our passions as the driving force and our time on Earth as the brief performance. The poem suggests that Heaven observes our actions and judgments, drawing attention to the consequences of our deeds. It concludes that while life's performance may be pl ayful, our ultimate demise is a serious reality, underscoring the fragility and brevity of existence.
ellauri386.html on line 404: Historically, the poem reflects the Elizabethan fascination with theatrical imagery and the influence of the stage on literature. It draws parallels between the structure of a pl ay and the trajectory of human life, highlighting the ephemeral nature of both.
ellauri386.html on line 426: Iceland. Although, at one point, it was a gorgeous and wild country with relatively unique geology (there are other pl aces like it, just not as easy to fly to)—it’s now an amusement park.
ellauri386.html on line 428: The first time I went there in 2005, tourists were already overrunning it. Still, at some of the geyser fields it still felt wild, with only wooden pl anks down and no railings for protection. By 2015, each site became like waiting in line at a Disney World attraction, and any quaint hot springs are now swarmed by tourists taking selfies. The locals are absurdly proud of their local landscapes. Like, I’ve ne ver been to a country where the peopl e identify so closely with the scenery. They act as if they built it all by hand, and like nowhere else in the world competes with it. I guess that’s what happens when the bulk of your economy is from tourists constantly praising what they see, and when you live on a medium-sized island with less than 400k peopl e.
ellauri386.html on line 430: There were rough teens roaming some of the towns with absolutely no attention paid by the local police. The super clean capital, Reykjavik, is only clean due to armies of street sweepers who clean it right before dawn. It is not due to residents respecting it too much to litter, despite what many peopl e want to believe. The food is ridiculously expensive ($25 for a McChicken-like chicken patty sandwich is normal), and usually, repulsive—boiled goat heads sitting at room temperature, horrendous subs with some kind of curry mayonnaise, and smelly fish.
ellauri386.html on line 432: When I got stranded on September 1st due to the bus system shutting down, the locals were very cold. I suppose you can’t expect peopl e to flock to help you, but I and a few other peopl e needed to travel only about 25 miles to get to where we needed to be. The car rental company (which seemed to only own one car) quadrupl ed the charge after they heard how desperate our situation was. A local refused to give us any advice or phone numbers to even call a taxi/rental agency until we paid them $350 so that they could go shopping in the next town over—then they unexpectedly joined our rental car and demanded they be driven back afterwards.
ellauri386.html on line 434: Some peopl e were okay. You can find good peopl e anywhere, but the arrogance and undue pride I encountered, as well as the overrunning by tourists—means I wouldn’t even consider returning.
ellauri386.html on line 439: Within 3–4 days I started feeling much better and had more energy. I started dropping weight almost immediately, down around 15-25 lbs by the end of the trip. The cravings I have for crap food in the US simpl y went away. The portions are not THAT much smaller. I went right back to feeling like crap, low energy, etc within 1 week of returning, and I was eating much more carefully.
ellauri386.html on line 454: On 29 October 1618, expl orer and adventurer Sir Walter Raleigh was beheaded at the Palace of Westminster, on the orders of King James I. Accused of deliberately inciting war between England and Spain during one of his expeditions. On the day of his execution he was reported to have been suffering from from ague, or fever.
ellauri386.html on line 465: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Stamp_of_USSR_1696.jpg/440px-Stamp_of_USSR_1696.jpg" />
ellauri386.html on line 500: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4d/VS_Solovyov.jpg/440px-VS_Solovyov.jpg" />
ellauri386.html on line 516: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/7f/%D0%A8%D0%BC%D0%B8%D0%B4%D1%82_%D0%90.%D0%9D.jpg" />
ellauri386.html on line 535: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/73/Hryhoriy_Skovoroda.jpg" />
ellauri386.html on line 544: VIDEO
ellauri386.html on line 549: ploads/2013/04/Kobza.png" />
ellauri386.html on line 554: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a9/Autofel.svg/440px-Autofel.svg.png" />
ellauri386.html on line 559: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1d/Ukraine-Slobozhanshchyna.png/500px-Ukraine-Slobozhanshchyna.png" />
ellauri386.html on line 569: VIDEO
ellauri389.html on line 38: THE EMPEROR OF EVERYTHING play:none">Kupl a kurkussa
ellauri389.html on line 45: ploads/2020/09/WDCS_312_05-copy-Medium.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri389.html on line 49: Ikäviä henkilöitä piisaa briteissä kuin Salpausselällä. Calle Lammasta sopii vielä sorkkia. Sen koulu- vaikkei luokkakaverista Coleridgesta löytyy lisätietoa, joka puuttuu albumin 52 pikaesittelystä. Ynnä muuta, ynnä muuta. Kupl a kurkussa löytyy suolistettuna albumista 127 .
ellauri389.html on line 59: Significantly, by the time he began the Elia essays - which followed on his failures at verse tragedy and a comic pl ay - Lamb had a thirty-year career at the East India Company, from which he drew a generous income.
ellauri389.html on line 65: Elia, in contrast to Bridget (qua Mary) speaks for a modern sensibility that is attuned to constant stimulation and that revels in the contemporary industrial and imperial economy of surpl us and novelty goods. His teacup is an object of debate because it epitomizes precisely the kind of dangerous indulgence Bridget fears: it is a luxury commodity and, with its fashion-dependent pattern and pl ace in a "set" of companion pieces, it inevitably entails additional purchasing. Elia's dialectical opposition to Bridget thus is underscored by his capacity to "love" one pattern of porcelain, and "if possible, [love another] still more". Indeed, Elia's susceptibility to new-sprung marketing strategies is suggested by his acknowledgment that china jars were "introduced" into his imagination by the recently invented tactics of advertising.
ellauri389.html on line 69: Elia sees no inconsistency in the fact that porcelain can be both an exclusive luxury item found at "great houses" and an ordinary household accessory such as his teacup, affirming the empire's newly inclusive economy in which porcelain is inexpensive, and a clerk can live like a king; indeed, Elia foregrounds imperialism's integrative effects on porcelain by intimating that his teacup has become precisely the "cheap luxury" for which Bridget always longs. Indeed, the essay itself is repl icated by the visual image on Elia's teacup: the cup's picture of "a young and courtly Mandarin, handing tea to a lady from two miles off' is a miniature, orientalized reflection of Elia's and Bridget's (qua Mary) incestuous tea-time smooching.
ellauri389.html on line 71: The nominal occasion of Lamb's essay is not just Elia's purchase of the teacup, but also Britain's en- trance into China, as it began with the East India Company's annexation of Singa Pura (Singapore) in 1819. The event, which was a pivotal moment in British imperial expansion, extended imperial activity from South Asia to the Far East. More importantly, the development revised a longstanding Sino-British trade imbalance that was particularly caused by porcelain and tea, and hence necessitated a change in British attitudes toward luxury purchases such as porcelain that reversed the animus previously demonstrated by Fielding, who compl ained that brits echanged the gold of one India to the clay ("mud") of another. Indeed, "Old China" facetiously depicts a cultural sinicization presumably precipitated by this intensification in East Asia-based imperial activity: Elia drinks tea "unmixed," in the Chinese fashion, and experiences an "almost feminine" pl easure in porcelain that likens him to the androgynous "men with women's faces" that Elia associates with China. Fuck the guy was obviously gay.
ellauri389.html on line 77: All this lexical pl ay upon the word "china" that Elia performs has an imperial logic: it lets a teacup metonymize the East Asian empire. Porcelain collecting is a way of possessing the country, as porcelain purchasers such as Elia displ ay a piece of China earth in British domestic space, offering everyday access to another exotic world every time he indulges in a cup of proverbial British tea. Deliberately confusing his cup's porcelain glaze with "the lucid atmosphere of fine Cathay" Elia imperially assumes the painted pictures on his teacup to be a telescopic vision of China itself ("for so we must in courtesy interpret that speck of deeper blue").
ellauri389.html on line 79: In fact it was both the soil and a mastery of firing techniques, bolstered by a fiercely protectionist economy, that maintained Chinese porcelain superiority for so long. For much of the eighteenth century, British porcelain manufacturers were unable to repl icate the intense heats required to properly fire porcelain. In addition, China further strained British market development by requiring all payment to be in specie and by remaining closed to foreign traders. As a result, when in the late eighteenth century the firing process was finally mastered by domestic china makers such as Wedgwood, Minton, and Spode, China's fierce restrictions against import trade still prevented the British competitors from threatening the supremacy of Chinese industry. A British mission to open China, for exampl e, was stalled as late as 1816. Ironically, this disadvantageous balance of trade between Britain and China actually added to porcelain's appeal.
ellauri389.html on line 83: Coleridge's "Kubla Khan" already suggests that Coleridge (the Brit) himself is the next poet-hero and successor to China's genius. As a fragment, however, the poem's famously incompl ete glimpse of Chinese brilliance foregrounds the poem's failure to realize its promise. Lamb's essay provides a more contemporary expl anation of Coleridge's dream: cheap porcelain was the immanent inspiration of "Kubla Khan."
ellauri389.html on line 85: Another show of Lamb's "economy" of romantic imagination is his essay, "A Dissertation upon Roast Pig" (1822), which also impl icitly recognizes the porcelain industry as a primary theater of contemporary British imperial dominance.
ellauri389.html on line 87: The essay resembles "Old China" in both its paean to Chinese exports ("China pigs have been esteemed a luxury all over the East, from the remotest periods that we read of"), and its detailed understanding of consumer economics. The titular anecdote is a fable about a Chinese boy's discovery, in the "ages when men ate their meat raw," of the pl easure of roast pig. The wondrous qualities of cooked food produce an immediate "tickling" in one's "nether" or "lower regions", just as Arvi Järnefelt warned. Bo-bo discovers the exquisite flavor when he accidentally sets fire to his house and swine. LOL what idiots, the kinks. Interestingly, roast pig and tea are among the luxuries that the Guernsies hoard during the German occupation.
ellauri389.html on line 91: "Roast Pig" congratulates the recent breakthrough of domestic porcelain manufacturers by downpl aying the long history of Chinese superiority at porcelain-firing techniques, and instead promoting an Englishman's mastery of these activities. The essay portrays the Chinese as irresponsible consumers and more importantly, authorizes English insurance culture as the one safe guarantee of guiltless consumption.
ellauri389.html on line 93: When "Old China" appeared in 1823, British porcelain had finally gained supremacy over Chinese porcelain. This revolution in the Sino-British trade imbalance was marked when the British porcelain manufacturer Spode began to furnish the Canton branch of the East India Company with English-manufactured "old blue," to compete in local Chinese markets against domestically manufactured porcelain. The event inverted the previously economically crippl ing import of porcelain to Britain: by 1826 the flow of silver between the countries ran in Britain's favor. The first translation into Chinese of k the Chinese characters that certified real, Chinese-made porcelain. Haha the irony of it all.
ellauri389.html on line 95: In the early nineteenth century, Britain began a reverse trade into China of opium, a product of Britain's colonial holdings in India and the Levant. The economic consequences of this dumping of opium into China were significant, as the drug, which rendered many Chinese addicted consumers, augmented the reversal of Britain's previous consumer subjugation to China in their desire for porcelain and tea, and indeed evocatively displ aced a kind of chinamania to China itself. With its catastrophic vision of obsessive Chinese consumers, the "Dissertation upon Roast Pig" is a comically topical glimpse of such opium-like needs and, as such, the earlier essay, like opium, paves the way for the kind of unencumbered pl easure in consumption that "Old China" relates. "Kubla Khan" was written under the influence of opium.
ellauri389.html on line 101: Etelämeren kupl a on talouskupl a, joka puhkesi Isossa-Britanniassa vuonna 1720. Syynä oli käsistä karannut spekulaatio Etelämeren komppania-nimisen kauppakomppanian osakkeilla.
ellauri389.html on line 109: Etelämeren komppania jatkoi tapahtumien jälkeen toimintaansa. Se myi pääosan oikeuksistaan vuonna 1750 Espanjan hallitukselle, ja toiminta lakkautettiin lopullisesti vuonna 1853. Ranskassa koettiin samaan aikaan vastaava taloudelliseen romahdukseen johtanut spekulaatiovillitys, joka tunnetaan nimellä Mississippin kupl a, koittaa britit puolustella.
ellauri389.html on line 129: Coleridge loi monia tuttuja sanoja ja lauseita, mukaan lukien "epäuskon jousitus"1 . Hänellä oli suuri vaikutus Ralph Waldo Emersoniin ja amerikkalaiseen transsendentalismiin. Koko aikuisikänsä ajan Coleridge kärsi lamauttavia ahdistuksen ja masennuksen kohtauksia; on arveltu, että hänellä oli kaksisuuntainen mielialahäiriö, jota ei kuitenkaan ollut määritelty hänen elinaikanaan. Hän oli fyysisesti epäterveellinen, mikä saattoi johtua reumakuumekohtauksesta ja muista lapsuuden sairauksista. Häntä hoidettiin näistä sairauksista laudanumilla, joka edisti elinikäistä oopiumiriippuvuutta. Kupl a Kurkussa oli kirjoitettu oopiumihöyryissä.
ellauri389.html on line 131: 1 Suspension of disbelief is the avoidance — often described as willing — of critical thinking and logic in understanding something that is unreal or impossible in reality, such as something in a work of speculative fiction, in order to believe it for the sake of enjoying its narrative. Vähän sama asia kuin Jamesin "will to believe". Coleridge also referred to this concept as "poetic faith", citing the concept as a feeling analogous to the supernatural, which stimulates the mind's faculties regardless of the irrationality of what is being understood. With a film, for instance, the viewer has to ignore the reality that they are viewing a staged performance and temporarily accept it as their reality in order to be entertained. Early black-and-white films are an exampl e of visual media that require the audience to suspend their disbelief that everything is black and white. Not to mention mute films! Tolkien ei uskonut tollaseen, ei kukaan normaalijärkinen oikeasti edes väliaikaisesti usko örkkeihin ja haltioihin. Sehän on vaan satua!
ellauri389.html on line 170: BUT: This article has multipl e issues. The neutrality of this article is disputed. It is a blatant case of whataboutism. How many were killed by the British Empire? While the precise number of deaths is sensitive to the assumptions we make about baseline mortality, it is estimated that somewhere in the vicinity of 100 million peopl e died prematurely at the height of British colonialism. This is among the largest policy-induced mortality crises in human history.
ellauri389.html on line 190: In 2006, Putin repl ied to George W. Bush's criticism of Russia's human rights record by stating that he "did not want to head a democracy like Iraq's," referencing the US intervention in Iraq. For exampl e, writing for Slate in 2014, Joshua Keating noted the use of "whataboutism" in a statement on Russia's 2014 annexation of Crimea, where Putin, compl etely irrelevantly, "listed a litany of compl aints about Western interventions, including the previous two Crimean wars 1853-56 and 1918-21."
ellauri389.html on line 202: Writing for National Review , kommentaattori Ben Shapiro kritisoi: "Se on kaikki tyhmää. Ja se tekee meistä kaikista entistä tyhmempiä." Heimoveli Michael J. Kopl ow Israel Policy Forumista komppasi. Noam Chomsky käytti taktiikkaa lokakuun 2001 puheessaan, joka piti syyskuun 11. päivän hyökkäysten jälkeen ja joka kritisoi Yhdysvaltain ulkopolitiikkaa.
ellauri389.html on line 231: “It’s compl icated,” he says. “On the positive side, this is a wonderful time to expl ore new ways of communicating with a global audience free from the constraints and obligations of academic life. I’ve seen pl enty of philosophy lecturers get increasingly bitter about higher education, and I don’t want to end up like them.
ellauri389.html on line 237: “The easy option would have been to sit it out and keep taking the salary, but I respond better to interesting challenges than pay cheques. I knew I’d made the right decision when I felt exhilarated rather than scared after handing in my notice, and already I’ve had numerous offers of paid work of one kind or another, including some interesting journalism and pl enty of invitations to speak in schools. Interview me again in ten years to see if I was crazy.” The ten years are gone, where's the interview?
ellauri389.html on line 239: Crazy or not, it’s a worrying sign for philosophy in the academy. Someone who’s very good at conveying compl ex philosophical ideas in pl ain English– a good teacher, in other words – has come to the conclusion that a university is not the best pl ace for him to be. An appl ied philosopher is not like a real one: Barring ordinary language philosophers, if you ask them direct questions in ordinary language they can’t answer without jargon and mystification. When faced with the need to expl ain what they’re doing and why it should be of interest to anyone at all outside of that culture, they look like flounders, both eyes on the same side of the skull. Not the best ones, like Quentin Skinner, Philip Pettit, and Peter Singer , who are all praised for their minds and their humanity, as well as the ability to think out of the fly and express themselves lucidly. No Perer Rabbit ainaskin on sertifioitu paska, varmaan siis noi 2 muutakin n.h ja Nigel ize.
ellauri389.html on line 248: Eli mitkä ovat republikanismin 3 pilaria? The Three Legged Stool of the Republican Party", tunnetaan myös nimellä "The Gipper's Stool" eli "Reagan’s Stool" on seuraava. Republikaanipuolueen valtapohja juontaa juurensa "jakkarassa" olevista kolmesta jalasta (ryhmästä), jotka ovat kristillinen oikeisto, sosiaalikonservatiivit, finanssikonservatiivit ja ulkomaiset interventiot. Neljähän tuosta taisi tulla, mutta same difference. Tämä koalitio syntyi yhdessä uuden oikeiston nousun ja Ronald Reaganin valinnan kanssa. Oligarkia, pl utokratia ja law and order, tiivistettynä.
ellauri389.html on line 265: We've heard this song before. Plain and simpl e, the guy got the sack. Having spoken with almost all of the brilliant philosophical minds alive and at large right now, what’s he discovered? Has a pattern emerged? Can he decipher the wisdom peculiar to our age? He furrows his brow and after some reflection, looks down in his beer and says, “No.”
ellauri389.html on line 267: “My grandfather gave me some really strange books to read, including Colin Wilson’s The Outsider and Zen and the Art of Motorcycle Maintenance. He was an autodidact, left school at about twelve, a compl etely self-taught man, so he had a very eclectic taste. He would pass on books that interested him, some were philosophical books, and they interested me too.
ellauri389.html on line 269: As a kid I wanted to be a biologist. I was intrigued by philosophy, but I thought I would never have been able to do it at university because of parental pressure to do something more useful, and also a compl ete ignorance in my schools about what philosophy was. I say ‘schools’ because I went to a public school for three years, and then my dad, who was an alcoholic, gambled away the money for my education that my mother had inherited, so then I went to a state school. As a result, I specialized in ethics. My wife once described me as a vicar who’d lost his pulpit.
ellauri389.html on line 271: “I spent most of my time at school pl aying rugby. I ended up going to Bristol University to do psychology, and I took philosophy and sociology as subsidiary subjects in the first year. I got disillusioned with psychology, dropped out, was a car park attendant for six months, tried to start a new course in English, but I wouldn’t have got a grant, so I carried on into my second year with philosophy, thinking I would become a journalist. Probably because I did so much student journalism I could write well enough that I conned them into a first class degree in philosophy, which meant I could go to Cambridge to do a PhD – there were proper grants in those days. I tried to get a job in publishing in my first year there but didn’t get that, so it’s only philosophy in want of anything better really."
ellauri389.html on line 273: Philosophers could be contributing to something that’s incredibly important. Gay marriage is just one exampl e of many. I don’t think philosophers responded particularly well to 9/11 either. As of free speech, I’m much more sympathetic to the American system actually. Of course I draw the line at incitement to violence, to certain sorts of pornography, pl agiarism, false advertising, the disclosure of official secrets – these are the areas where I would shut the buggers up.”
ellauri389.html on line 299: ploads/2014/11/William-Wordsworth.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri389.html on line 302: Just as the Christian God determines what is right and wrong for many if not all monkeys around the world, Nature serves this purpose for the narrator. He is, in this tender moment, directing his monologue not to her but to his sister, Dorothy. They are extraordinarily close and he wishes to share with her his adoration for Nature. He is searching for a way to make his sister understand that pl acing your heart within the hands of Nature is without risk. She should feel the “mountain-winds” on her skin and not resist them.
ellauri389.html on line 306: He states that she will never forget this pl ace and it will become a paradise for “all sweet sounds and harmonies.” His sister will not be run down by “dreary” normalcy even after big brother's death.
ellauri389.html on line 308: William and Dorothy's mother died when he was only seven years old and she was six, and he was orphaned at 13 and she at 12.Though he did not excel, he would eventually study at and graduate from Cambridge University in 1791. Bill fell in love with a young French woman, Annette Vallon while visiting France and she somehow became pregnant. Dorothy was taught by just a bunch of uncles. She remained particularly close to her brother, the more famous poet William Wordsworth, and the siblings lived together in Dorset and Alfoxden before William married her best friend, Mary Hutchinson, in 1802. Thereafter Dorothy Wordsworth made her home with the coupl e.
ellauri389.html on line 310: ploads/media/cache/default/0001/01/e224c0e2f52fa072d0218c22d099aaaf433be1a2.jpeg/231becf219803c216e3ac9e39bdb5692" />
ellauri389.html on line 322: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/02/Charles_Lloyd_the_poet_with_his_wife_Sophia.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri389.html on line 335: Who by thy pl ague is cursed,
ellauri389.html on line 354: Satiety's pl ethoric heir,
ellauri389.html on line 355: A wishless state, o'ergorged with pl enitude!
ellauri389.html on line 375: Charles Lloyd (12 February 1775 - 16 January 1839) was an English poet. He joined a passionate community of peopl e who love what you love. Lloyd was born in Birmingham, the eldest son of Charles Lloyd (1748–1828), the quaker banker (founder of Lloyd's Bank) and philanthropist. He was educated privately by a tutor named Gilpin.
ellauri389.html on line 377: Lloyd was intended to have entered his father's bank, but, in Cottle's language, "thought that the tedious and unintellectual occupation of adjusting pounds, shillings, and pence suited those alone who had never, eagle-like, gazed at the sun, or bathed their templ es in the dews of Parnassus." Joopa joo. Kuulostaa Olli Blåbergiltä. Psykisk insufficiens.
ellauri389.html on line 379: As early as 1795 he published a volume of poems at Carlisle, which displ ay a thoughtfulness unusual at his age. In 1796 he made the acquaintance of Coleridge on the latter's visit to Birmingham to enlist subscribers to his Watchman. Fascinated with Coleridge's conversation, Lloyd "proposed even to domesticate with him, and made him such a pecuniary offer that Coleridge immediately acceded to the proposal." This was £80 a year, in return for which Coleridge was to devote 3 hours every morning to his instruction; and although the undertaking (apart from the "domestication") may not have been very strictly performed, Lloyd, much later in life, speaks with enthusiasm of the benefit he had derived from Coleridge's society.
ellauri389.html on line 393: In 1799 Lloyd married Sophia, daughter of Samuel Pemberton of Birmingham, with whom, if De Quincey can be trusted, he eloped by proxy (!), empl oying no less distinguished a person than Robert Southey to carry her off. He initially resided with her at Barnwell, near Cambridge, whose prosaic landscape is the subject of 1 of his best prosaic poems.
ellauri389.html on line 395: About August 1800 he took the small mansion of Low Brathay, near Ambleside, where he received Southey and his wife on their return from Portugal, and where De Quincey made his acquaintance in 1807. At that time he appeared enviably happy, enjoying an ampl e allowance from his father, and blessed with a numerous family of children, and a wife whom De Quincey declares to have been "as a wife and mother unsurpassed by anybody I have known in either of those characters."
ellauri389.html on line 397: He corresponded in French with Miss Watson, daughter of the Bishop of Llandaff, "the letters on both sides being full of spirit and originality." His principal literary occupation was a translation of Ovid's Metamorphoses, commenced in 1805 and compl eted in 1811, specimens only of which have been published.
ellauri389.html on line 405: Meanwhile Lloyd was pl aced in an asylum near York, from which he escaped about 1818, and found his way back to Westmoreland, where he suddenly reappeared at De Quincey's cottage. De Quincey vividly describes his condition and conversation, but does not mention, what he privately told Woodhouse, that Lloyd laboured to convince him of his (Lloyd's) identity with the devil, and in trying to establish this assertion ultimately reasoned himself out of it. This anecdote confirms the testimony of Talfourd: "Poor Charles Lloyd! Delusions of the most melancholy kind thickened over his latter days, yet left his admirable intellect free for the finest processes of severe reasoning."
ellauri389.html on line 411: For some time he displ ayed a flurry of literary activity, publishing in 1819 a collection of his poems, under the title of Nugæ Canoræ; in 1821, Desultory Thoughts in London; Titus and Gisippus; and other Poems; and Poetical Essays on the Character of Pope; in 1822, The Duke D'Ormond, a tragedy written in 1798, together with Beritola, a metrical tale in the Italian manner; and a small volume of poems in 1823. Nothing to write home about, alackaday.
ellauri389.html on line 423: His best poem is "Desultory Thoughts in London," which contains, with other not so good passages, a beautiful description of his home in Westmoreland, and deepl y felt though poorly composed eulogies on Lamb and Coleridge. Tulee mieleen Hansa-ravintolan pojat, ykköskastin köyhät runoilijat ja niitä hännystelevät lahjattomat mutta vakavaraisemmat siivestettävät.
ellauri389.html on line 427: ploads/media/default/0001/01/8ab4a6a18e1101d37feff112c5138ec9233902cf.jpeg?w=970&h=&fit=max&key=4&sig=2dde4ecd3b419320092d7ea30cb16b5222901c91b83c663305bb3e68ef08a7de&970" />
ellauri389.html on line 438: Knowing there was no chance of obtaining Sir George’s blessing on their union, the two married secretly, probably in December 1601. For this offense Sir George had Donne briefly imprisoned and dismissed from his post with Egerton as well. He also denied Anne’s dowry to Donne. Because of the marriage, moreover, all possibilities of a career in postal service were dashed, and Donne found himself at age 30 with neither prospects for empl oyment nor adequate funds with which to support his household.
ellauri389.html on line 442: During the next 10 years Donne lived in poverty and humiliating dependence, first on the charity of Anne’s cousin at Pyrford, Surrey, then at a house in Mitcham, about 7 miles (11 km) from London, and sometimes in a London apartment, where he relied on the support of noble patrons. All the while he repeatedly tried (and failed) to secure empl oyment, and in the meantime his family was growing; Anne ultimately bore 12 children, 5 of whom died before they reached maturity. Donne’s letters show his love and concern for his wife during these years: “Because I have transpl anted her into a wretched fortune, I must labour to disguise that from her by all such honest devices, as giving her my company, and discourse.” About himself, however, Donne recorded only despair: “To be part of no body is as nothing; and so I am. … I am rather a sickness or a disease of the world than any part of it and therefore neither love it nor life.”
ellauri390.html on line 38: Viimeinen mohikaani play:none">Tappojuttuja
ellauri390.html on line 66: The Stockbridge-Munsee Band of Mohican Indians is descended from a group of Mohicans (variously known as Mahikan, Housatonic and River Indians; the ancestral name Muh-he-con-ne-ok means “peopl e of the waters that are never still”) and a band of the Delaware Indians known as the Munsee. The Mohicans and the Delaware, closely related in customs and traditions, originally inhabited large portions of what is now the northeastern United States. In 1734, a small group of Mohicans established a village near Stockbridge, Massachusetts, where they began to assimilate with the palefaces, but were nonetheless driven out by Euro-Americans. In 1785 they founded “New Stockbridge” in upper New York State at the invitation of the Oneida Indians. Their new home, however, was on timber land sought after by non-Indian settlers.
ellauri390.html on line 100: Teivas Syöpä-Närpiön tai siis Teivas Oxalan kappale sen poika-aikojen poikakirjaa, Jallu Saulin "Nuori Kijl" on joutunut jonkun jäämistöstä puuntakaahuutajan haltuun Oulunkylän kontista. Siihen on hyvä tutustua Antti Tuurin pohjalaistarinoiden rinnalla. Siinä porvarillinen agronomi Kijl pl okkaa aatelisen neiti Flemingin. Tää voisi olla Jallun vanhempien romaani. On tähän paljon nyysitty sukulaismiehen Siltalan pehtooristakin. Tapahtuvat sijoittuvat Poljanyn kylään (ex-Uusikirkko) ikivanhalla venäläisellä Kurjalan kannaxella.
ellauri390.html on line 166: Iloxeni luin viimeisestä Tiedelehdestä (olisikin viimeinen, lakkaisi toi maailmanlopun kexinnöillä hehkutus) että apinoiden pl aneetan valtiaiden kasvukäyrän ennustellaan kääntyvän negatiivisexi joskus 50-luvulla niiden saavutettua kaikkien aikojen 10 miljardin huippulukeman. Sitä me ei olla enää kazomassa, ei nähdä enää 10G rollaattoria työntämässä aivan käsittämätöntä määrää käppänöitä. Siinä Ogelin kauppakeskuskin kalpenee. Ne saavat varmaan sääskishokin kuin etelä-Ruozin itikat kun eivät pääse huiskimaan hyttysiä edes hännällä molempien handujen ollessa rollaattorin kahvoissa.
ellauri390.html on line 197: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f1/%D0%9A%D1%80%D0%B5%D1%81%D1%82%D0%BE%D0%B2%D1%81%D1%8C%D0%BA%D0%B8%D0%B9_%D0%92%D1%81%D0%B5%D0%B2%D0%BE%D0%BB%D0%BE%D0%B4_%D0%92%D0%BE%D0%BB%D0%BE%D0%B4%D0%B8%D0%BC%D0%B8%D1%80%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B8%D1%87_6.jpg" height="400" />
ellauri390.html on line 198: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/uk/thumb/c/c3/%D0%9A%D1%80%D0%B5%D1%81%D1%82%D0%BE%D0%B2%D1%81%D1%8C%D0%BA%D0%B8%D0%B9_%D0%92%D1%81%D0%B5%D0%B2%D0%BE%D0%BB%D0%BE%D0%B4_%D0%92%D0%BE%D0%BB%D0%BE%D0%B4%D0%B8%D0%BC%D0%B8%D1%80%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B8%D1%87_5.jpg/300px-%D0%9A%D1%80%D0%B5%D1%81%D1%82%D0%BE%D0%B2%D1%81%D1%8C%D0%BA%D0%B8%D0%B9_%D0%92%D1%81%D0%B5%D0%B2%D0%BE%D0%BB%D0%BE%D0%B4_%D0%92%D0%BE%D0%BB%D0%BE%D0%B4%D0%B8%D0%BC%D0%B8%D1%80%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B8%D1%87_5.jpg" height="400" />
ellauri390.html on line 209: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f4/Vsevolod_Krestovsky_%281880s%29.jpg/384px-Vsevolod_Krestovsky_%281880s%29.jpg" />
ellauri390.html on line 218: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d6/%D0%9F%D0%B5%D1%82%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%B1%D1%83%D1%80%D0%B3%D1%81%D0%BA%D0%B8%D0%B5_%D1%82%D1%80%D1%83%D1%89%D0%BE%D0%B1%D1%8B%2C_%D1%82%D0%BE%D0%BC_1.jpg/500px-%D0%9F%D0%B5%D1%82%D0%B5%D1%80%D0%B1%D1%83%D1%80%D0%B3%D1%81%D0%BA%D0%B8%D0%B5_%D1%82%D1%80%D1%83%D1%89%D0%BE%D0%B1%D1%8B%2C_%D1%82%D0%BE%D0%BC_1.jpg" />
ellauri390.html on line 366: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/ee/Malm-Reuterholm_by_Forsslund.jpg" />
ellauri390.html on line 397: Vihkosen päättää Wäinö Havaxen rallatus Rukajärven tielle lähtiessä. Jätkä kaatui sinne rähmälleen heti kättelyssä. Havaxesta on pitkä paasaus Runkkujussin eli Juhani Peltosen yhteydessä albumissa 60 . Takakannessa on Rudolf Waldenin termennys 1940 Serlan paperityöläisille että nyt ei parane poliittisesti lakkoilla. What else is new. Kirjasen toimittajat komppaavat: nyt on jokaisen pysyttävä paikallaan eikä asenteilla. A good wife knows her pl ace.
ellauri390.html on line 423: Ma formation d´architecte m´a appris à considerer l´intention particulier de chaque espace. Les chiottes sont un environ parfait pour méditer. Là, nous pouvons revenir à nous-mêmes et toucher quelque chôse au pl us profond de nous.
ellauri390.html on line 581: In an attempt to chart a new path for his life, he appl ied to the prestigious Kellogg Graduate School of Management at Northwestern University. He was denied due to– “a lack of significant work experience.”
ellauri390.html on line 613: Calvert told Caitlin Stasey she wanted to debunk stereotypes about female sex workers, "What I can say is that not all sex workers are the stereotype peopl e want to believe. Many of us are college educated, feminists, and absolutely love what we do."
ellauri390.html on line 737: ploads/2019/04/shutterstock_289448738-1024x683.jpeg" width="100%" />
ellauri390.html on line 738: Nämä viisi ihmistä ovat napanneet viisi isoa. (Paizi taitaa olla sama hemmo tupl attuna photoshopilla.)
ellauri390.html on line 752: Aiika heikkoja, Andrea-Maria. Sama izekäs maali tupl attuna photoshopilla. Missäs lapset ja lapsenlapset? Nyt on Darwin pettynyt. Sie unterstützt Führungskräfte und Entscheider dabei, wertebasiert in die Zukunft zu denken und in ihrem eigenen Leben und Unternehmen stärker wirksam zu werden. Tuskin näillä eväillä.
ellauri391.html on line 38: Kaiken turhuudesta play:none">Turhuutta
ellauri391.html on line 67: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/fe/Ignacy_Jan_Paderewski.PNG" height="300px" />
ellauri391.html on line 127: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/d6/Bundesarchiv_Bild_194-1283-23A%2C_Wuppertal%2C_Evangelische_Gesellschaft%2C_Jahrestagung.jpg" height="500px" />
ellauri391.html on line 143: Johtuen Augustinuksen uuspl atonistisesta filosofiasta saamista vaikutteista ja menneisyydestä puhetaidon opettajana Sanan teologia johti hänen ajattelussaan mielenkiintoisiin sovelluksiin koskien kristillistä julistusta: Kristus sisäisenä opettajana mahdollistaa Augustinuksen mukaan kaiken ymmärtämisen ihan ize ja myös sen, että ihminen voi silti tilata Voitto-Sanoman.
ellauri391.html on line 147: Platonismissa noin 100-luvulta eKr. 200-luvulle jKr. kestänyttä suuntausta kutsutaan keskipl atonismiksi. Sen tavassa nähdä maailmankaikkeus ja maailmankaikkeuden synty on paljon yhteistä Johanneksen evankeliumissa kuvatulle näkemykselle. Keskipl atonistien mukaan maailmankaikkeudella on kolme syytä:
ellauri391.html on line 156: Tolleen niinkö savenvalaja, savimuotti sekä savi. These are a cinch sanoi Jahve käärmeistä, ei tarvi edes muottia. Keskipl atonistien mukaan Jumala muovasi Sanallaan alkumateriasta järjestetyn maailmankaikkeuden. Myös pl atonistit siis ajattelivat, että alussa oli Sana, että tämä sana oli Jumalan luona ja että kaikki syntyi sanan voimalla. Jopa Johannes Koroma, joka olisi saanut jäädä syntymättä. Olikohan se sana "Voi ei".
ellauri391.html on line 173: And now for something compl etely different!
ellauri391.html on line 180: In 2012 she published her first novel and has worked as a freelance author ever since. She continues to write novels but also writes and creates content for "Totally Not Aliens", a video gaming company. Autorin von dem spielbaren Kinderbuch "Eppi". Felicitas Pommerening, geb. 1982, lebt mit ihrem Mann und ihren drei Kindern in Mainz. Hoppl a Sie haben eine Seite gefunden, die leider nicht existiert.
ellauri391.html on line 183: ploads/2014/12/Portrait-Iwand.jpg" height="300" />
ellauri391.html on line 220: By 1910 they had perfected pl astic film and acetate lacquers, or aircraft dope. The company also made lacquers that were used for German Zeppelins and airpl anes.
ellauri391.html on line 224: Dreyfus is a nickname for a man who had to use a crutch. The surname, which was originally derived from the German word drivuoss, which means a tripod or a cooking pot with three legs, was also appl ied to a person who "stood for" or was tolerant of everything. Prominent among members of the name Dreyfus in this period include Alfred Dreyfus (1859-1935), who as a French army captain was falsely accused of treason.
ellauri391.html on line 231: At the same time he reiterated his view that white peopl e must not suffer from hunger and cold, but caring for them must be primarily a local and voluntary responsibility.
ellauri391.html on line 248: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9d/Bundesarchiv_Bild_194-1282-30A%2C_Wuppertal%2C_Evangelische_Gesellschaft%2C_Jahrestagung.jpg/440px-Bundesarchiv_Bild_194-1282-30A%2C_Wuppertal%2C_Evangelische_Gesellschaft%2C_Jahrestagung.jpg" />
ellauri391.html on line 257: sen perusposition hyväksymistä, että ihminen on Jumalan olemiselle korvat höröllä ja että hän näin ollen voi tietää välittömästikin Jumalan ilman Jee-suxen pl aneettapyörästöä. Mutta Kristus-ilmoitus merkitsee tiukkaa "ei" tälle ajattelumallille. Kristus-ilmoituxet lyhtypylväissä impl ikoivat juuri sen, ettei välitöntä yle-ilmoitusta ole. Inkarnaatio eli koiranpennun ihmiseksi tuleminen merkizee ennen kaikkea sitä, että Jumala ilmoittaa torjuvansa järjen uskonnon, joka pyrkii aina transsendoimaan ihmisyyden. Eli inkarnaatio osoittaa luonnollisen teologian vääräksi. Apinassa ei ole jumaluuden kypenää.
ellauri391.html on line 264: Lutherin käyttämä nimitys on deus ex machina. Ilmoitettuun jumalaan uskominen on aina riski. Tästä ilmoitimme. Ich bin der ich bin, ich bin kein Schlüssel. Ich bin deus iratus. Singen loben beten den Herrn. Herra se on herrallakin. Hän on oma herransa. Isä, poika ja koira potkii toisiaan ringissä kuin karhukopl a. Ks. Barth 1948, 390: "... pojan isänä, isän poikana, hän on hän itse, minä ja sinä, hän on itselleen pyhä me-henki ollakseen samalla yksi ja sama." Vizi mitä dityrambia. Se on mysteerio. Jla on izeriittoinen, se ei tarvi ulkopuolista partneria. Sixi sillä ei ole vaimoa. Poika on ja koira ja tyttöystävä. Sullon mun luonto. Mitäs läxit.
ellauri391.html on line 274: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8c/Jain_Prateek_Chihna.svg/300px-Jain_Prateek_Chihna.svg.png" />
ellauri391.html on line 277: Kristus suostui olemaan syntinen ihminen. Hetkinen senhän piti olla synnitön? Tässä on on nyt jotain hämärää, reason to suspect foul pl ay. Me saadaan olla syntisiä kerta jumalakin on. Synti erottaa sen jumalasta eli siitä izestään. Ei helkkari, tää ei nyt oikein pelitä. Taas päädyttiin paradoxiin. Mene vankilaan käymättä kassan kautta. Tän pitää olla joku metafora, äiti ja isä samalla.
ellauri391.html on line 319: Mistä tää outo sanamystiikka on peräisin? Nähtävästi piäasiassa keskipl atonistiselta Johnulta. Yht 40 osumasta haulle "jumalan sana" suoranaisesti outoja ovat:
ellauri391.html on line 342: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8e/KhomyakovA_AvtoportretABR.jpg/400px-KhomyakovA_AvtoportretABR.jpg" />
ellauri391.html on line 355: ploads/2009/09/eevam.jpg" />
ellauri391.html on line 377: Luther käsittää siis tahdon vapaaksi myös toisessa merkityksessä, jota erityisesti Augustinus korostaa. Eli tahto on vapaa myös siinä mielessä, että sillä on kyky tahtoa olla tahtomatta jotain. Transitiivisuus ei päde, T impl ies TT on falskia. Katuminen ja parannus on mahdollista, eli T ja T non T.
ellauri391.html on line 424: Jumala on kaikkialla, se kurkkii ruosteisesta vessanpöntöstä. Missään ei saa olla rauhassa. Deus vult! Igitur pius animus non exhorret audire, Deum esse in cloaca, imo cum scriptura testetur Deum esse ubique et repl ere omnia, non solum dicit eum esse in locis illis, verum necessario discet et noscet eum ibi esse.
ellauri391.html on line 447: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/50/Lucas_Cranach_d._%C3%84._057.jpg/380px-Lucas_Cranach_d._%C3%84._057.jpg" />
ellauri391.html on line 455: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/95/Martin_Luther_2.jpg/380px-Martin_Luther_2.jpg" />
ellauri391.html on line 522: Chen Hao is the younger brother of Chen Xi, he along with his brother and grandfather lived far away in a lone pl ace after the extermination of their clan. He is extremely talented and has an innate talent in sword dao cultivation.
ellauri391.html on line 552: Crispin James Garth Wright ( / r aɪ t / ; syntynyt 21. joulukuuta 1942) on brittiläinen filosofi, joka on kirjoittanut uusfregealaisesta (uuslogistisesta) matematiikan filosofiasta, Wittgensteinin myöhemmästä filosofiasta ja totuuteen liittyvistä asioista, kuten realismi, kognitivismi, skeptismi, tieto ja objektiivisuus. Hän on filosofisen tutkimuksen professori Stirlingin yliopistossa ja opettanut aiemmin St Andrewsin yliopistossa, Aberdeenin yliopistossa, New Yorkin yliopistossa, Princetonin yliopistossa ja Michiganin yliopistossa. Vaihtanut opinahjoa kuin mustalainen hevosta. Loppusijoituspaikka Stirling on kalatalousyliopisto Skotlannin pystymezässä. Selvää alamäkeä. Crispin esitti "epävirallisia argumentteja", että (i) Humen periaate (yhtä monta iff E bijektio) pl us toisen asteen logiikka on johdonmukainen ja (ii) siitä voidaan tuottaa Dedekind–Peano-aksioomit. Molemmat tulokset todistettiin epävirallisesti jo Gottlob Fregen (Fregen lause) toimesta, ja myöhemmin George Boolos ja Richard Heck todistivat ne tiukemmin. Crispin ei tehnyt siinä muuta kuin hälisi.
ellauri391.html on line 558: Ever since compl eting his Ph.D. at the University of Pittsburgh in 1993, the Israeli philosopher Irad Kimhi has been building the résumé of an academic failure. After a six-year stint at Yale in the ’90s that did not lead to a permanent job, he has bounced around from school to school, stringing together a series of short-term lectureships and temporary teaching positions in the United States, Europe and Israel. As of June, his curriculum vitae listed no publications to date — not even a journal article. At 60, he remains unknown to most scholars in his field.
ellauri391.html on line 560: To his admirers, Kimhi is a hidden giant, a profound thinker who, because of a personality at once madly undiscipl ined and obsessively perfectionistic, has been unable to commit his ideas to paper. As a result, he has not been able to share his insights — about logic, language, metaphysics, theology, psychoanalysis, aesthetics and literature — with the wider academic world.
ellauri391.html on line 562: This type of character, though unusual, is not unheard-of in philosophy. Unlike, say, history or sociology, philosophy has long reserved a pl ace for the occasional talent who struggles or declines to publish. The tradition dates back to Socrates, and was boldly carried on by Esa Saarinen.
ellauri391.html on line 563: The philosopher Robert Pippin, who has helped secure positions for Kimhi at the University of Chicago, expl ains that drafts of the manuscript have circulated to great excitement, if among “a very curated audience.” Harvard University Press was interested in publishing the book as early as 2011, but Kimhi, ever the perfectionist, was reluctant to let it go, forever refining and refashioning. Perhaps his foot-dragging was an expression of doubt, too: Could any book live up to his reputation?
ellauri391.html on line 568: In other peopl e's words, logic provides us not with an empirical understanding of how our thinking actually works (that’s the purview of psychology), but with a normative understanding of how thinking should work. There is no “I” in logic.
ellauri391.html on line 578: Genius? Folly? Something in between? It is hard to canvass a wide range of opinion about Kimhi’s work. He and his book have, until now, existed within a relatively small subsection of the philosophical world. But even within that world, there are those who are wary of his intellectual project — yet impressed by it all the same. Brandom, whose life’s work relies on the distinction between force and content that Kimhi attacks, admits to finding his former student’s ideas “deepl y uncongenial” and “threatening.” He also describes them, however, as “radically original” and part of a new intellectual movement that is “bound to transform our philosophical understanding.”
ellauri391.html on line 588: Should Anthropologists Judge the Peopl e They Study?
ellauri391.html on line 607: kantaen niin sanottuja konventikkelipl akaatteja.
ellauri391.html on line 657: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/76/Fox_by_Lely_2.jpg/500px-Fox_by_Lely_2.jpg" height="500" />
ellauri391.html on line 658: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/6a/William_Penn.png" height="500" />
ellauri391.html on line 666: Penn maksoi intiaaneille mielestään kohtuullisen 1 200 punnan kertakorvauksen näiltä förbimistään maista. Voltaire praised this "Great Treaty" as "the only treaty between those peopl e [Indians and Europeans] that was not ratified by an oath, and that was never infringed." Many, including the now near-extinct lenni-lenapes, regard the Great Treaty as a myth that just somehow sprung up around Penn. Penn kept slaves but treated them in a way that he considered fair. Penn ei ize asunut Pennsylvaniassa vaan briteissä.
ellauri391.html on line 680: Lenapit uskovat, että ennen luomista ei ollut mitään, vain tyhjä pimeä tila. Tässä tyhjyydessä uiskenteli kuitenkin heidän luojansa, Kishelamàkânkin henki. Lopulta tuossa tyhjyydessä hän nukahti. Nukkuessaan hän unelmoi maailmasta sellaisena kuin he sen tunsivat, maapallosta vuorten, metsien ja eläinten kanssa sovussa. Älä unta nää. Sari Essayah säästää kaikki Suomen satumezät (0 kpl ) monitoinikoneilta. Sari pitäisi aisata ja laittaa halki, poikki ja pinoon. Vittu kävelköön vaikka Muurmanskiin.
ellauri392.html on line 38:
Kirjallisuuden purkaamo play:none">Kauhu kaunaista
ellauri392.html on line 40: Arvostelua Anuxesta play:none">Turhuutta
ellauri392.html on line 50: At a NATO meeting in Vilnius last year, NATO leaders agreed to develop new pl ans to ensure the alliance could provide "300,000 troops at high readiness."
ellauri392.html on line 88: ploaded_images/marilyn-6.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri392.html on line 259: ploads/2017/07/Abdourahman-Waberi-150x150.jpg" height="300" />
ellauri392.html on line 260: ploads/2017/07/Nancy-Naomi-Carlson-150x150.jpg" height="300" />
ellauri392.html on line 286: Weil alle poststrukturalistischen Autoren mit denen man sich hier auseinandersetzt expl izit, impl izit oder in der Vorstellung des Autors von Heidegger kommen, müssen sie sich den größtenteils unbegründeten Vorwurf machen, die Shoah durch eine Art hermeneutische Geschichtsvergessenheit zu relativieren. Der Antisemitismus de Mans wird hier einfach extrapoliert auf dessen contemporaries: Wenn der Heideggerianer de Man Antisemit war (das stimmt), dann diskreditiert sich dadurch auch der Heidegger-Apologet Derrida. Aber warum?
ellauri392.html on line 293: Toinen 2:sta arviosta tulee Minnesotan St Cloud State Universityn opiskelijoiden pl okista ja lienee pääasiassa positiivinen, vaikka siitä "huskyjen" huonon tavaustaidon tähden ei tahdo saada tolkkua.
ellauri392.html on line 333: An empty doorway and a mapl e leaf tyhjä käytävä ja lehti vaahterasta
ellauri392.html on line 344: That Judas perished by hanging himself, there is no certainty in Scripture: though in one pl ace it seems to affirm it, and by a doubtful word hath given occasion to translate it; yet in another pl ace, in a more punctual description, it maketh it improbable, and seems to overthrow it. (“Literature” 71)
ellauri392.html on line 352: Roman Witold Ingarden (1893 –1970), vähän siis mamma Margitia nuorempi, syntyi Krakovassa silloisessa Kakaniassa. Husserl piti häntä Freiburgissa yhtenä parhaista tai ainakin suurimmista opiskelijoistaan. Roman ize piti enemmän Lembergistä ja Twardowskista. Barbarossan aikaan Roman piti päätä alhaalla Krakovassa. Kun hänen talonsa pommitettiin, hän jatkoi työskentelyä kirjansa, „Der Streit um die Existenz der Welt“ (1947, 1948) parissa. Siitähän siellä ulkona juuri kärhämöitiin. Roman kuoli 1970 Krakovassa aivoverenvuotoon liiasta pohdinnasta. Ei ois pitänyt harrastaa uuspl atonismia.
ellauri392.html on line 364: ploads/2016/06/veronica-forrest-thomson.png" />
ellauri392.html on line 377: I with no middle flight intend the truth to speak out pl ain
ellauri392.html on line 381: Eros is a strong purpl e butt-headed god.
ellauri392.html on line 415: It was getting dark on the pl atform of nowhere
ellauri392.html on line 425: We pl ayed at mates and mating and stopped up the drain.
ellauri392.html on line 428: You simpl y have no notion how delightful it will
ellauri392.html on line 432: She wanted to and was collecting peopl e who did
ellauri392.html on line 436: But peopl e say they sound very similar.
ellauri392.html on line 477: So simpl e as to think your name
ellauri392.html on line 514: Women and children and enslaving peopl e.
ellauri392.html on line 547: Especially if one may be pl umber as well as poet
ellauri392.html on line 549: Poetic Artifice “Pain stopped pl ay” and
ellauri392.html on line 581: And do you it empl oy:
ellauri392.html on line 606: ploads/media/cache/default/0001/20/b90a02f48f1ad99c265d7e20223bf4d445c33d54.jpeg/bf0462f2361a8e67a959791945f1a6b6" />
ellauri392.html on line 615: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cb/Adrienne_Raphel_%2851507124776%29_%28cropped%29.jpg/440px-Adrienne_Raphel_%2851507124776%29_%28cropped%29.jpg" />
ellauri392.html on line 624: Häneltä on suomennettu runo "Seuraava, olkaa hyvä" (Next, pl ease), suom. yöradioääni ja viherpoliitikko Pekka Sauri, antologiassa Mies joka luki runon: suomalaisten miesten valitsemia runoja , toim. Salme Saure, Helsinki: Otava. Muutkin Vilpun suomentajat ovat setämiehiä: Hannu Tarmio, Jyrki Kiiskinen, Risto Ahti.
ellauri392.html on line 658: Analysis (ai): "Next, Please" by Philip Larkin expl ores themes of unfulfilled expectations and the passage of time. The poem depicts the speaker's frustration with the incessant anticipation of future events that ultimately fail to deliver on their promises.
ellauri392.html on line 667: Harrystä ranut ja sakut eivät ymmärrä että Amerikan historia on sui generis, se ei ole tollasta whackingia kuin reign of terror ja kaasukammiot. Inkkarien puzaus, orakauppa ja verinen kansalaissota oli jotain ihan muuta, positiivisempaa, puhumattakaan Korean, Vietnamin ja Irakin sodista ja kähminnästä uuden mantereen banaanitasavalloissa. Mutta kontinentaalit vaan vihaavat liberaalidemokratiaa yleensä ja amerikkalaista suurkapitalismia erityisesti. Foucault halveeraa "yxilöä", "liberaalia demokratiaa" ja "lakia ja oikeutta". Foucaultin masentavaa apinankuvaa paljon valoisampi on Genesixen versio, missä apinan käsketään lisääntymään kovasti ja tekemään paratiisista tehomaanviljelys. Seuraavaxi paras apinan majesteetillisuuden julistus on sit American Bill of Rights. Huoh, ei jaxa. Diszipl in ei ole paha asia. Arbeit macht frei sanoi jo Thoreau Juuso Walden pondilla. Disregarding the gibes of those who are less fortunate than ourselves.
ellauri392.html on line 704: it seems that Jewish peopl e belong to the unique body, with the same breath and thoughts. Jews have an inconceivable and indestructible sense for community and ministration, despite the diversities in a group, or their location.
ellauri392.html on line 730: They have represented the indicators of their bad destiny, their sacrifice for the better world by the solitude and alienation of Jewish individuals in America, turning back to the historical facts (since the Second World War) as the cause for the atrocity towards Jews and their suffering then and now. The writers put the Jews on the pedestal of a sublime nation and at the same time made them victims of modern society. The Jewish writers took a chance in American literature which had a didactic effect, using another common argument, not easily compatible with the theory of superior American morals but certainly appl icable. [Ни сам не разумем ову тачку.] The writers would claim they had a duty to portray how peopl e actually think and behave. But the writers also had a duty to impl ant moral lessons.
ellauri392.html on line 732: Solitude and alienation represent not only a stapl e topic for the Jewish novel but for the whole period of 1950’s. It is the period of advanced postmodernization in America. Seen in such a perspective, the Jewish adversarial culture is or was quite rightly alienated from middle America. The country is always rising from the period of depression or going into one.
ellauri392.html on line 735: but the spiritual aspects like beards, sidelocks and funny hats are not recovered easily. Seen as a sick society, America in Jewish perspective ought to be criticized and taught by Jewish moral philosophy, religious principl es and humanity. They believed there was such a thing as the public interest which needed to be identified and strengthened.
ellauri392.html on line 745: Herzog continues to be Bellow’s “biggest book” and it used to be on the New York Times best-seller list for one entire year. At its heart is Bellow’s profound shock at discovering, a year after his separation from Sondra, (Alexandra Tschacbasov, his second wife) her affair with their mutual friend, Jack Ludwig, Bellow lapsed into deep depression and produced an intensely self-justifying hero who was tearful, cuckolded, and utterly humiliated. Moses Herzog, a Jewish intellectual type is essentially precipitated into intellectual and spiritual crisis by the failure of his marriage. The pl ot of the novel is slender. Herzog leaves his home and marriage, fails in the classroom, abandons his academic project, and undertakes a mas-sive spiritual and intellectual obligation to keep the letters for God. At the end of it, he seems to have regained his sense of Jewish identity, purged himself of violent anger, abandoned his latest mistresses, and repented for his dandy style. He has had a profound education in the realities of human nature, and rediscovered the value of nature and solitude on his lushy Ludeyville estate.
ellauri392.html on line 747: The Jews have endured heavy atrocities during a long period of time and they have used that to the utmost to become an influential, powerful, rich and respected peopl e. Nobody could say that any person in Jewish community ever forgets the painful history of their own nation. It is like the Beilis case which is credited as the main contributing factor in bringing about the Russian Revolution.The actual case occurred between 1911 and 1913 in the Ukrainian capital, Kiev.
ellauri392.html on line 750: it has been shown in literature, art and film, elegantly and majestically but very often by the latent thematic structure and by the strong psychological portraits of their characters. (The American film industry is mainly run by - guess who.) Jewish authors always have in their heads the immense and sacred goal: glorifying the history, the roots and customs of the Jewish peopl e, and specifically the permanent expression of Jewish self-compassion.
ellauri392.html on line 752: The vision of a just society is often enough inverted into an impotent nostalgia and an expl icit, old, organic, but very dangerous, nationalism. In other words, literary works of Jewish writers become an ideology.
ellauri392.html on line 812: Jos mies katsoo peiliin ja näkee siinä kuvansa, ikään kuin se olisi maalattu; se muistuttaa miestä. Ihmiskuvassa on silmät, mutta kuussa on valoa. Kuningas Oidipuksella on ehkä yksi silmä liikaa. Tämän miehen kärsimykset näyttävät sanoinkuvaamattomilta, sanoinkuvaamattomilta, sanoinkuvaamattomilta. Jos näytelmä kuvaa sellaista, sieltä se tulee. Mutta miten ajattelen sinua nyt? Kuten purot, jonkin Aasian kaltaisen ulottuvan loppu kuljettaa minua mukana. Tietysti Oidipuksella on tämä kärsimys. Tietysti siksi. Kärsikö myös Hercules? Todennäköisesti. Eivätkö Dioscurit ystävyydessä myös kantaneet kärsimystä? Herkuleen tavoin väittely Jumalan kanssa on kärsimystä. Ja kuolemattomuuden jakaminen tämän elämän kateudessa on myös kärsimystä. Mutta se on myös kärsimystä, kun ihminen on kesäpilkkujen peitossa, ja jotkut täpl ät ovat kokonaan peitossa! Sitä kaunis aurinko tekee: se nostaa kaiken ylös. Hän ohjaa nuoria miehiä säteidensä viehätyksellä kuin ruusuja.
ellauri392.html on line 885: Alaviite: The New Criterion on New Yorkissa ilmestyvä kuukausittain ilmestyvä kirjallinen aikakauslehti ja taiteellisen ja kulttuurisen kritiikin aikakauslehti. Siinä on osiot runouden, teatterin, taiteen, musiikin, median ja kirjojen kritiikille. Sen perustivat vuonna 1982 Hilton Kramer, entinen The New York Timesin taidekriitikko, ja Samuel Lipman, pianisti ja musiikkikriitikko. Tietysti ashkenazeja. Nimi viittaa brittiläiseen The Criterion -kirjallisuuslehteen, jota toimitti yli puolifasistinen T. S. Eliot vuosina 1922–1939. Kramer taisteli sitä vastaan, mitä hän piti vasemmistolaisena poliittisena ennakkoasenteena taidekritiikassa ja mitä hän piti esteettisenä nihilismina, joka on ominaista monille 1900-luvun työtaiteilijoille ja taidekriitikoille. Turhautuminen The New York Timesin vasemmistopolitiikkaan johti hänen eroamiseen sanomalehdestä Reaganin vuonna 1982. Hän perusti ( Samuel Lipmanin kanssa ) konservatiivisen The New Criterion -lehden , jonka toinen toimittaja ja kustantaja oli myös Kramer. Hän otti vahvasti kommunisminvastaisen kannan vuoden 2003 katsauksessaan Anne Appl ebaumin Gulag: A History -kirjasta . Teoksessa The Twilight of the Intellectuals (1999) hän puolusti taidekriitikko Clement Greenbergin antikommunistisia näkemyksiä. Hän teki eron modernismin ja postmodernismin välillä terävästi, viitaten postmodernismin aikakauteen "tänä ironian ja institutionalisoidun kumouksen aikakautena". Hän on asettanut tämän vastakohtana modernismista löytämiensä ihanteiden kanssa: "totuuden kurinalaisuus, rehellisyyden ankaruus". Hilton Kramer kuoli sydämen vajaatoimintaan 27. maaliskuuta 2012 Harpswellissa. Ei mikään ylläri.
ellauri392.html on line 895: ploads/2011/03/heidegger-well.jpg" />
ellauri393.html on line 38: ELÄMÄ JA TEOS play:none">Kohinaa
ellauri393.html on line 40: plumbing/cistern-burlington/old_cistern_2.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri393.html on line 41: Vanha TEHO vessa toimii plumbing/cistern-burlington/cisterns-burlington.php">lappoperiaatteella . WC:n keksijä oli sattuvasti nimeltään Crapper, ihan sattumalta. Winston Churchillilla se oli kengässä, paperia kärjessä.
ellauri393.html on line 58: plumbing/cistern-burlington/old_cistern_1.jpg" />
ellauri393.html on line 62: plumbing/cistern-burlington/old_cistern_2.jpg" />
ellauri393.html on line 66: plumbing/cistern-burlington/old_cistern_3.jpg" />
ellauri393.html on line 102: Talousliberaalit anglosaxit koittaa houkuttaa länsiapinoita ottamaan entistä isompia riskejä ja sijoittamaan vähiä säästöjään erilaisiin kieroihin käärmeöljy-yhtiöihin. Sarjassamme Tiede 3000-lehden surkeimpia pseudotiedepl äjäyxiä esittelemme artikkelin PSYKOLOGIA: KUINKA VALITA VIISAAMMIN?. Sen on väsännyt mahdollisesti juutalainen britti "tiedetoimittaja" DAVID ROBSON siteeraten mm. More In Common säätiön huijaria Daniel Yudkinia (100% varma jenkkijutku). David Robson is an award-winning science writer specialising in the extremes of the human brain, body and behaviour. Sen julkaisut on vertaisarvioitavissa sen henkkoht. nettisivustolla https://davidrobson.me .
ellauri393.html on line 164: Totuus: Vuonna 2016 hallituksen virastot lähettivät 49,868 käyttäjätietoihin liittyvää pyyntöä Facebookille, 27,850 Googlelle ja 9,076 Appl elle, kertoo Electronic Frontier Foundation (EVVK), suuri hyväntekeväisyysjärjestö, joka puolustaa kansalaisten oikeuksia digitaalisessa maailmassa ja neuvoo kansalaisia internetiin liittyvissä yksityisyysasioissa.
ellauri393.html on line 217: Monilla nisäkkäillä ja joillakin linnuilla, matelijoilla ja hailla pl us Hanna Montanalla on ylimääräinen silmäluomi, jota kutsutaan nimellä nictating membrane. Luomi on osittain läpinäkyvä ja pyyhkäisee silmän yli sivuttain sisäkulmasta lähtien. Tämä ylimääräinen silmäluomi auttaa suojelemaan silmää roskilta tai vammoilta ja yleensä pitää myös sarveiskalvon kosteana. Ihmisillä ja useimmilla muilla kädellisillä tuo kolmas silmäluomi on kuitenkin surkastunut ihomaiseksi taitteeksi silmäkulmaan, ilman mitään tarkoitusta. Tämä on saattanut tapahtua, koska käytämme käsiä ruoan ottamiseen sen sijaan että hyökkäisimme saaliin kimppuun suullamme ja kaivaisimme peltoja kasvoillamme. Olemme siis kehittyneet niin, ettemme tarvitse niin paljoa suojaa silmillemme. Tarvittaessa käytämme suojakaseja.
ellauri393.html on line 229: Tämä lihas on pohkeen yläosassa niillä 90 prosentilla ihmisistä joilla se on. Se auttaa taittamaan polvea, mutta vain vähän – ihmiset, joilla sitä ei ole, eivät kaipaa sitä. Jänne, joka kiinnittyy pl antaris
ellauri393.html on line 266: Lincoln's 1860 presidential election triggers the secession of the southern slave states and the start of the American Civil War . Little Willie dies of typhoid due to contaminated pl umbing in the White House midterm 1862.
ellauri393.html on line 278: Persons with typhoid fever carry the bacteria in their bloodstream and intestinal tract. Symptoms include prolonged high fever, fatigue, headache, nausea, abdominal pain, and constipation or diarrhoea. Some patients may have a rash. Severe cases may lead to serious compl ications or even death. Typhoid fever is a life-threatening infection caused by the bacterium Salmonella Typhi. Typhoid fever is common in pl aces with poor sanitation and a lack of safe drinking water.
ellauri393.html on line 283: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cb/1921-6-4_No_Swimming_-_Norman_Rockwell.jpg/500px-1921-6-4_No_Swimming_-_Norman_Rockwell.jpg" />
ellauri393.html on line 305: Saunders manspl ainaa tosi äijämäisesti naisoletetuista vainajista. Tää on kyllä proosallinen uudelleenlämmitys Edgar Lee Mastersista. Pastori Everly Thomas on erityisen äitelä.
ellauri393.html on line 318: VIDEO
ellauri393.html on line 322: Elokuvan Kavkaznaja pl enniza on ohjannut Leonid Gaidai. Se on viimeinen elokuva, jossa esiintyy kolmikko "Purkki" (Georgy Vitsin), "Fool" (Juri Nikulin) ja "Pro" (Jevgeni Morgunov), ryhmä hämmentäviä antisankareita, jotka ovat yllättävän samanlaisia kuin Three Stooges sekä suomalaiset Härski, Uuno ja Sörsselssön. Elokuva sai ensi-iltansa Moskovassa 1. huhtikuuta 1967. Musiikista vastasi Aram Hatsipompponen.
ellauri393.html on line 324: ploads/2016/11/oblozhka-kavkazskaya-pl ennica-ili-novye-priklyucheniya-shurika-1.jpg" />
ellauri393.html on line 326: Vanhojen herrojen setä, toveri Dzhabrail (Frunzik Mkrtchyan), työskentelee autonkuljettajana toveri Saakhoville (Vladimir Etush), joka on alueellisen kolhoosin johtaja ja kaupungin rikkain ja vaikutusvaltaisin mies. Kartvelilaiset eivät juuri huoli ostaa vokaaleita. Saakhov päättää mennä naimisiin Ninan kanssa ja solmii Dzhabrailin kanssa sopimuksen morsiamen ostamisesta vastineeksi 20 lampaasta ja suomalaisen Rosenlew- jääkaapin (холодильник) tai pölkkärin (пылесос) tuonnista pl us Siperian matkalipusta.
ellauri393.html on line 386: ploads/2023/03/DSC_9760-768x512.jpg" />
ellauri393.html on line 434: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/6e/Putin_Kukli.jpg" />
ellauri393.html on line 437: The show's producing team was involved in several legal controversies. Viktor Shenderovich, a satirist and a writer for the show, has claimed that an unnamed top government official required NTV to exclude the puppet of Putin from the show. Accordingly, in the following episode, called "Ten Commandments", the puppet of Putin was repl aced with a cloud covering the top of a mountain and a burning bush.
ellauri393.html on line 439: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b0/Mandrake_root%2C_England%2C_1501-1700_Wellcome_L0058458.jpg/440px-Mandrake_root%2C_England%2C_1501-1700_Wellcome_L0058458.jpg" />
ellauri393.html on line 466: Avioliitto ja naimattomuus: pl ussia ja miinuxia. 1Otan nyt puheeksi asian, josta kirjoititte. Miehen on kyllä hyvä olla koskematta naiseen, 2mutta haureuden välttämiseksi tulee kunkin miehen elää oman vaimonsa ja kunkin naisen oman miehensä kanssa. 3Mies täyttäköön aviovelvollisuutensa vaimoaan kohtaan, samoin vaimo miestään kohtaan. 4Vaimon ruumis ei ole hänen omassa vallassaan vaan miehen, samoin ei miehen ruumis ole hänen omassa vallassaan vaan vaimon. 5Älkää keskeyttäkö yhdyntäänne, paitsi ehkä yhteisestä sopimuksesta joksikin aikaa, jotta voitte keskittyä rukoukseen; palatkaa sitten taas yhteen. Muutenhan Saatana pääsee kiusaamaan teitä, kun ette kuitenkaan pysty hillitsemään itseänne. 6Sanon tämän myönnytyksenä enkä käskynä. 7Soisin kaikkien elävän niin kuin itse elän. Jokaisella on kuitenkin oma Jumalalta saatu armolahjansa, yhdellä yksi, toisella toinen.
ellauri393.html on line 479: Hojo hojo hoki Viljo Kojo. Titityy visersi Toivo Lyy. Tässä muutamia mitättömiä itäsuomalaisia. Otto Toivo Lyy (vuoteen 1930 osuvammin Mähönen; 20. huhtikuuta 1898 Joensuu – 27. heinäkuuta 1976 Naantali) oli suomalainen runoilija ja kääntäjä. Pikku Myy, sarvikyy. Sanoitti 1952 olympiahymnin ja suomensi DDR:n kansallishymnin pl us liudan paxuja runoelmia. Toivo oli pohjoiskarjalaisen näköinen pikkumies vaikka vanha norssi olikin. Toivo Lyy sanoitti myös Norssin marssin 1950-luvun lopulla. Sävelmän marssiin laati tunnettu säveltäjä, pianisti, urkuri ja kuoronjohtaja Taneli Kuusisto vuonna 1978 urheiluseura Turnareiden 100-vuotisjuhlaa varten.
ellauri393.html on line 557: Andrusovon rauhan ehdot vahvistettiin Moskovassa 16. toukokuuta 1686 solmitussa niin sanotussa ikuisessa rauhassa sopimusosapuolten kesken. Sopimuksessa sovittiin, että Dneprin vasen ranta jää Moskovan haltuun Kiova mukaan lukien, mistä Moskova maksaa 146 000 rupl an korvauksen ja että Kiovan alueen eteläosa ja Bratslavin alue jäävät asuttamatta neutraaleiksi alueiksi. Andrusovon kylä sijaitsee linnuntietä noin 64 kilometriä Smolenskista lounaaseen
ellauri393.html on line 561: src="https://controlmaps.polgeonow.com/wp-content/upl oads/2023-10-09_ukraine-control-map-counteroffensive-russia-crimea.png"
ellauri393.html on line 572: ja entisestä ulkoministeriön dipl omaatista tuli
ellauri393.html on line 576: dipl omaatti Ann Wright sai tarpeekseen. Hän
ellauri393.html on line 642: Chaucerista on paasauxissa sen 70 mainintaa, nyt vasta tulin lukaisseexi alkuperäistä. Herooinen kupl ettilaulaja, jolla on leuat kasvantaviärät kuin savolaisella, sellaiselta tämä Gottfried vaikuttaa. Kuuntele vaikka tätä ritarin tarinaa: Ken riemukkaammalta silloin on näyttänyt kuin Palamon? Ken hypellyt niin on ilosta kuin Arcite? Ken osaisi kyllin hyvin, minä en, kuvata ihastuxen, innon jolla ne heppulit Theseun välttävät arvosanat kuuli?
ellauri393.html on line 723: to bed Someone's taken my pl ace.
ellauri395.html on line 38:
Dios te bendiga play:none">Tohinaa
ellauri395.html on line 40: ploads/2023/01/Jees.Kop_.-1.gif" width="100%" />
ellauri395.html on line 43: ploads/2023/02/Screenshot-2023-02-23-at-10.29.30-768x651.png" width="100%" />
ellauri395.html on line 362: ploads/2023/11/img-20231119-wa0001-768x432.jpg" />
ellauri395.html on line 376: Lähtölaukauksena oli Abrahamin sopimus 4000 vuotta sitten. Nykyisten tapahtumien Turkia ymmärtää juontavan Abrahamin -liiton sopimukseen, jonka Israel ja useat arabimaat allekirjoittivat 2020. Dipl omaattisessa ja historiallisessa liittoutumassa Israelin kanssa on osallisena esimerkiksi Bahrain ja Yhdistyneet Arabiemiraatit.
ellauri395.html on line 428: pload/ar_1.372930884361267,c_fill,g_faces,h_558,w_767/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/13-3-8504236" Width="100%" />
ellauri395.html on line 626: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/30/Young_Brown%2C_Jack_Moore%2C_William_Branham%2C_Oral_Roberts%2C_Gordon_Lindsay_Kansas_City_1948.jpg/440px-Young_Brown%2C_Jack_Moore%2C_William_Branham%2C_Oral_Roberts%2C_Gordon_Lindsay_Kansas_City_1948.jpg" />
ellauri395.html on line 641: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/77/Joel_Osteen_Preaching_%28cropped%29.jpg/440px-Joel_Osteen_Preaching_%28cropped%29.jpg" />
ellauri395.html on line 642: Onpas keraamiset impl antit
ellauri395.html on line 655: Huomattavia johtajia hyvinvointiteologian kehityksessä ovat Todd White, Benny Hinn , E. W. Kenyon , Oral Roberts , A. A. Allen , Robert Tilton , T. L. Osborn, Joel Osteen, Creflo Dollar [hyvä nimi], Kenneth Copeland , pastori Ike , Kenneth Hagin, Joseph Prince [lainaus vaaditaan] ja Jesse Dupl antis.
ellauri395.html on line 859: Kazo kohtaa 3 edellisessä mallissa, pl us tätä:
ellauri395.html on line 1262: ploads/2024/03/2023-09-MP-WEST-and-Tania-from-Odesa-in-BG-59-1.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri395.html on line 1267: Kenneth Copeland (s. 6. joulukuuta 1936, Lubbock Texas) on jäyhäleukaisesti virnistävä 86-vuotias kristitty televisioevankelista ja uskonnollisen Kenneth Copeland Ministries (KCM) -organisaation perustaja. Copeland lukeutuu karismaattiseen liikkeeseen. Hän on tunnettu kiistanalaisesta opetuksestaan, jota on myös sanottu menestysteologiaksi. Silver and gold we have pl enty, unlike nelisormi Pete. Copeland kääntyi kristinuskoon marraskuussa 1962 ja toimi aluksi Oral Robertsin lentäjänä. Sillä on ollut 3 narttua, (Ivy Bodisock dm. 1955; div. 1958), Cynthia Davis (m. 1958; div. 1961) ja Gloria Neece (m. 1963).
ellauri395.html on line 1280: ploads/2016/05/550300_750x975.jpg" />
ellauri395.html on line 1283: Uzbekistan is the strategic key for all of Central Asia, and tensions remain high between the post-Soviet regime and the Islamist movements (most radical in the Fergana Valley). Much of the population is tired of poverty, corruption, and failure to make economic progress, and Islamists attract jobless young men. Economic prospects have improved recently, as both tourism and empl oyment opportunities for women have improved. Pray for positive change that lasts, and leadership that governs for the sake of the peopl e. Pray for the true peace only Jesus can give.
ellauri395.html on line 1287: For the discipl ining and mentoring of new believers. No one knows how many isolated individuals and clusters exist, but there are far more than those affiliated with officially recognized churches. Many fall away when difficulties intensify; pray that Christians might be integrated quickly into home groups or fellowships where they can grow. Many others find their witness curtailed by fear; pray for boldness for them.
ellauri395.html on line 1294: For cultural authenticity. Ask the Lord to raise up culturally appropriate Uzbek Christian literature, music, worship styles and fellowship structures. There are Uzbek ministry-training courses, led and taught compl etely by Uzbeks. These things are beginning to emerge, with significant fruit as a result.
ellauri395.html on line 1317: Kenyonsin perhe antoi väärän todistuxen, että Hagin ei pl agioinut kirjojaan pyhältä kolminaisuudelta. Valitettavasti sivu ei ole tavoitettavissa enää, eikä tämä Kennethkään.
ellauri395.html on line 1319: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0a/Fagin_by_Kyd_1889.jpg/440px-Fagin_by_Kyd_1889.jpg" />
ellauri395.html on line 1323: VIDEO
ellauri395.html on line 1330: Utspelet var mycket uppmärksammat och mötte kritik, både för Ekmans tidigare profil som (särskilt under föreningens tidiga år) aggressivt evangelikal ledare med tidvis mycket fientliga utspel mot romersk-katolska kyrkan som okristen och korrupt samt att han opportunistiskt valt att konvertera efter att ha avslutat ett 30-årigt värv som frikyrkopastor. Ekman betonade själv att beslutet var framvuxet under lång tid och förankrat hos åtskilliga av föreningens medlemmar samt att spl ittringen var personlig och i mycket en uppgörelse med långvariga fördomar om katolsk teologi, exegetik och ritual, som han gradvis kommit att närma sig och känna sympati med.
ellauri396.html on line 37: ple;color:white;text-align:center;margin-bottom:0%">Lindsay Ziepherd
ellauri396.html on line 38: FOR CRYING OUT LOUD play:none">Pillitystä
ellauri396.html on line 80: Make friends with peopl e who want the best for you.
ellauri396.html on line 102: ploads/2015/03/im-mad-as-hell.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri396.html on line 107: She is a wop immigrant, same vintage as Mrs. Zilles. A crucially significant event for her was when an outhouse expl oded after she poured too much quicklime into the latrine. Arttu perrkele!!! "That symbolized everything I would do with my life and work. I would be someone who would jump into the latrine of culture, into pornography and crime and psychopathology... and I would drop my own wee bomb into it". For more than a decade, Paglia was the partner of artist Alison Maddex. She dislikes lesbians and they dislike her. Paglia is an atheist, and has stated she has "a very spiritual mystic view of the universe". I endorse astrology. I believe in astrology. You hear? She is also a critic of contemporary American feminism and of post-structuralism, as well as multipl e aspects of American culture such as its visual art, music, and film history. Too right.
ellauri396.html on line 128: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/14/Milo_Yiannopoulos_2016.jpg/440px-Milo_Yiannopoulos_2016.jpg" />
ellauri396.html on line 153: ploads/2018/06/ethan-jackson-vulva-lindsay-shepherd.Blazing_Catfur.youtube.jpg" />
ellauri396.html on line 174: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b7/Jian_Ghomeshi_in_Vancouver_2009.jpg/440px-Jian_Ghomeshi_in_Vancouver_2009.jpg" height="300px"/>
ellauri396.html on line 198: En ole koskaan lausunut maatunnustusta. Itse asiassa syntyessäni Maapl aneetalle – nimenomaan maamassalle, jota kutsumme Kanadaksi – minut kutsui tänne jonkinlainen henkinen tai luonnollinen voima, (isin pippeli) joten en koskaan kutsuisi itseäni "kutsumattomaksi vieraaksi" vain siksi, että en ole Kanadan alkuperäiskansa, joka muutti Aasiasta Beringin maasillan kautta.
ellauri396.html on line 240: ploads/2018/04/bb1.png" width="100%" />
ellauri396.html on line 268: ploads/2019/01/png0103N-Lindsay-Shepherd.jpg?quality=90&strip=all&w=576&type=webp&sig=0eePLCV8kasy5KKR2ar6Rw" height="200px" />
ellauri396.html on line 269: Ugly fat professor man claimed Lindsay Shepherd is only successful because of her "young white female face". Shepherd said she's aware her telegenic air may have contributed to her case. "Why are these peopl e´s minds so infected?" Shepherd asked on Twitter. "Why can´t I be seen as someone who has writing and analytical abilities and a strong work ethic, uterus swollen by a Romanian, not the Iranian who recycled badly."
ellauri396.html on line 316: VIDEO
ellauri396.html on line 365: The Toronto Blessing revival impacted charismatic Christian culture through an increase in popularity and international reach and intensified criticism and denominational disputes. Criticism primarily centered around disagreements about charismatic doctrine, the Latter Rain Movement, and whether or not the physical manifestations peopl e experienced were in line with biblical doctrine or were actually heretical practices.
ellauri396.html on line 367: The Toronto Blessing has become synonymous within charismatic Christian circles for terms and actions that include an increased awareness of God's love, religious ecstasy, external observances of ecstatic worship, being slain in the Spirit, uncontrollable laughter, emotional and/or physical euphoria, crying, healing from emotional wounds, healing of damaged relationships, and electric waves of the spirit. "Holy laughter", as a result of overwhelming joy, was a hallmark manifestation, and there were also some reports of instances of participants roaring like lions or making other animal noises such as super loud farts. Leaders and participants present in these services claim that most of these manifestations, including some peopl e roaring like lions, were physical manifestations of the Holy Spirit's presence and power, while some Pentecostal and charismatic leaders believe these were the counterfeits of the Spirit as is mentioned in the biblical passage of 2 Thessalonians 2:9. In December, 1994, Toronto Life Magazine declared TAV (Toronto Airport Vineyard church) as Toronto's most notable tourist attraction for the year.
ellauri396.html on line 369: The events that occurred at the Toronto Blessing are not unique in Christian history; similar events were recorded as happening within the Azusa Street revival of the early 1900s that led to the Helluntaiystävät movement, as well as in other revival movements throughout the history of Christian church movements. The Bible also records supernatural events when peopl e encountered God and describes lightning coming from the top of Mount Sinai in Exodus 20:18 when the 10 Commandments were given, Jewish soldiers and templ e police falling down in the Garden of Gethsemane when encountering Jesus in John 18:6, Moses' face shining when descending Mount Sinai in Exodus 34:35, and a cloud of glory that appeared over the Hebrew tent of meeting in Exodus 40:34. Proponents of the Toronto Blessing point to these biblical exampl es as partial evidence of the activities in their meetings being legitimate.
ellauri396.html on line 371: A common element described by those in attendance at the meetings was the claim of miraculous events that occurred during the services. Some of these could be categorized as physical healings, while in other instances, peopl e reported they had a new awareness of God's love, a new freedom from past fears, anger, drinking, and relationship problems.
ellauri396.html on line 373: There were even claims of God putting gold fillings into peopl e's teeth during the service.
ellauri396.html on line 374: A study was conducted in 1995 that surveyed 1,000 peopl e who visited TAV and approximately half of them reported that they felt spiritually refreshed after the meetings, close to 90% said they were "more in love with Jesus" than they had been in any other point in their lives, and 88% of married respondents stated that they were also more in love with their spouse. 300 patients reported new gold fillings. A follow-up study conducted in 1997 also yielded similar figures from the original survey respondents.
ellauri396.html on line 376: The Toronto Blessing appears to share similarities with other past events where historical records report similar activities of laughter, crying, falling down, shaking and claims of miraculous healings. According to some, these events have been recorded as occurring throughout, not only the recent past, but for the approximate 2,000 years since the crucifixion and resurrection of Christ took pl ace.
ellauri396.html on line 380: Critics referred to it as self-centered and evil and claimed that the strange manifestations were warning signs for other Christian believers to stay away. In his book, Counterfeit Revival, Hank Hanegraaff claimed that the revival has done more damage than good and that the Toronto blessing was a matter of peopl e being enslaved into altered states of consciousness where they obscure reality and enshrine absurdity. Hank Hanegraaff also stated in a 1996 Washington Post interview that, "It's nice to feel all these things, but the fact is, these feelings will wear off, and then disappointment steps in. I call it post-Holy Laughter depression syndrome." Jeesus pitää enemmän räkänokista kuin tyhjän naurajista. Pyhissä jutuissa ei ole mitään hymyilyttävää. Hartaus on vakava asia. Ei taivaaseen mennä iloa pitämään.
ellauri396.html on line 384: James Beverley, a critic of the Toronto Blessing and a professor at Toronto-based Tyndale Seminary, stated that these events were a "mixed blessing", but was later quoted in 2014 as saying, "whatever the weaknesses are, they are more than compensated for by thousands and thousands of peopl e having had tremendous encounters with God, receiving inner healings, and being renewed."
ellauri398.html on line 38: ZIPPORAH play:none">Napinaa
ellauri398.html on line 40: ploads/2017/07/zipporah_art.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri398.html on line 214: ploads%2Fimages%2Fdr-amy-jill-levine-inset-revised-1717816763.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri398.html on line 270: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/73/Lot_en_zijn_dochters_Rijksmuseum_SK-A-4866.jpeg/500px-Lot_en_zijn_dochters_Rijksmuseum_SK-A-4866.jpeg" width="70%" />
ellauri398.html on line 292: VIDEO
ellauri398.html on line 384: Vous devez sans doute avoir une mauvaise définition de Dieu. Non, Dieu n'est pas une espèce de Père Noël en barbe blanche assis sur le bord d'un nuage contempl ant son oeuvre: l'Univers. Non, Dieu est l'Univers visible et invisible, crée et incrée. Il est UN et omniscient issu du Néant. Dieu, si on voulait une image serait le seul trou noir super massif possible. Cette réalité, si on l'envisage, est la source même de la religion et cela induit nécessairement que nous n'avons aucun libre arbitre. Nous sommes, que nous le voulions ou non, au fond du trou de Dieu.
ellauri398.html on line 426: Politisk-dipl omatisk agerer USA arrogant, som om amerikanerne var verdens herre, som alle bare skal lystre og rette sig efter. Derved støder de verdens nationer fra sig. Det medfører, at dollarens værdi er i frit fald. Rusland knytter bånd med den øvrige verden: Kina, Indien, nationerne i Afrika og Mellemøsten, Sydamerika…
ellauri398.html on line 430: Maan sisimmän ytimen liike on hidastunut niin paljon, että se on alkanut pyöriä takaperin suhteessa muuhun pl aneettaan, Pekingin yliopiston tuore tutkimus vahvistaa. 1970-luvulle tultaessa ydin pyöri hieman muuta pl aneettaa nopeammin, hidastui vuoteen 2008 mennessä, ja vuoteen 2023 tultaessa oli alkanut pyörimään takaperin suhteessa pl aneetan vaippaan. Er der nå en risiko for, at fjendtlige rumvæsener kan finde Jordens pl acering og invadere? Not likely, who would want to have anything to do with such idiots as us?
ellauri398.html on line 436: ploads/2015/04/wpid-wp-1428200120264.jpeg" width="90%" />
ellauri398.html on line 506: ploads/sites/2/2020/04/web3-noli-me-tangere-wiki.jpg?w=360&q=75" width="90%" />
ellauri398.html on line 510: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/30/Titian_-_Christus_und_Maria_Magdalena_Noli_me_tangere.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri398.html on line 515: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e7/1950_%22Avicenna%22_stamp_of_Iran.jpg/440px-1950_%22Avicenna%22_stamp_of_Iran.jpg" />
ellauri398.html on line 522: ajattelussaan yhdistämään uuspl atonismin ja aristotelismin. Hänen pääteoksellaan
ellauri398.html on line 537: ploads/2023/09/mm149235-1.png?w=1080" width="90%" />
ellauri398.html on line 605: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8b/Imru_al-Qays.png/440px-Imru_al-Qays.png" />
ellauri398.html on line 1210: For more on this subject, refer to Natan’s article entitled, “Is America in End-Times Bible Prophecy?” (http://www.hoshanarabbah.org/pdfs/america.pdf ). What Scripture Prophecies Will Happen To America Just Prior To The Second Coming? By Ja´acov Natan Lawrence, Waters In The Wilderness, A Teaching Ministry of Hoshsna Rabbah Messianic Discipl eship Resources.
ellauri398.html on line 1227: From this passage, we find that Elohim (pl ural) has both male and female components. We know that the Father and the Son aren’t female, so what’s left? Obviously by process of elimination and through logical deduction all that we have left is the Holy or the Set-Apart Spirit of Elohim. The femininity of the Spirit is substantiated by the fact that the Hebrew word for spirit (ruach) is in the feminine gender. This is interesting!
ellauri398.html on line 1232: His next greatest life ambition is to see as many lukewarm modern-day Laodicean discipl es of Yeshua/Jesus awake from their spiritual slumber and to fall in love with Yeshua the Messiah and to love and serve him for the rest of their lives. Lastly, Nathan is doggedly determined and passionate to confront spiritual darkness and to see the kingdom of evil led by Satan the devil crushed and defeated and the spiritual captives set free in the name of and for the glory of Yeshua the Messiah! Amein.
ellauri399.html on line 42: WHO NEEDS YOU play:none">Kamalaa
ellauri399.html on line 52: pload/s--LZO1QAVo--/c_scale,w_1860/c_scale,w_1860/f_auto/q_auto/v1/migrate/9115f47609fb11290fa4d1644bd71287" width="90%" />
ellauri399.html on line 55: Den aktuelle konfrontation mellem Rusland og Vesten hviler på en opfattelse af, at russerne er blevet uretfærdig behandlet. Der er flere lag i den opfattelse, men det mest fundamentale er Moskvas opl evelse af, at Vesten narrede det daværende Sovjetunionen ved at bryde et løfte om, at NATO ikke ville ekspandere østover. Løftet skulle være blevet blevet fremsat ved Den Kolde Krigs afslutning. Vesten narrede det daværende Sovjetunionen ved at bryde et løfte om, at NATO ikke ville ekspandere østover. Putin hævder, at Baker i en diskussion den 9. februar 1990 med den sovjetiske leder Mikhail Gorbatjov afgav et mundtligt løfte om, at hvis Rusland gik ind på tysk genforening, ville NATO ikke udvide mod øst. Vesttysklands daværende kansler Helmut Kohl, der insisterede på, at et Vesttyskland ville forblive medlem af NATO, også efter tysk genforening, erklærede dagen efter – også henvendt til Gorbatjov – at »naturligvis vil NATO ikke kunne udvide sit territorium til DDR’s nuværende område«.
ellauri399.html on line 57: Blev disse tilsagn nogensinde nedfældet i en aftale? Nej, og det skyldes især, at præsident George H.W. Bush mente, at Baker og Kohl havde givet for store indrømmelser – eller med Bakers ord: At han »var kommet lidt for langt frem på skiene«. Ja, mange russiske politiske beslutningstagere var netop imod de indrømmelser, Gorbatjov gav på det tidspunkt. Især på grund af de impl ikationer det kunne få, og rent faktisk også fik, for det øvrige Østeuropa. Vel fik Rusland mundtlige forsikringer om, hvor grænserne for NATO’s ekspansion gik, men skriftlige garantier fik det aldrig.
ellauri399.html on line 76: It wasn't at all romantic. I didn't have a romantic dorm room, so I slept on the floor in friends' rooms, I returned coke bottles for the 5¢ deposits to buy food with, and I would walk the 7 miles across town every Sunday night to get one good meal a week at the Hare Krishna templ e. I loved it, especially the chanting and opening the little doors. And much of what I stumbled into by following my curiosity and intuition turned out to be priceless later on. Let me give you one exampl e:
ellauri399.html on line 78: Advertisement - Buy Appl e Products
ellauri399.html on line 82: VIDEO
ellauri399.html on line 96: None of this had even a hope of any practical appl ication in my life. But ten years later, when "we" were designing the first Macintosh computer, it all came back to me. And "we" designed it all into the Mac. (It was Wozniak who built the box, I was basically just a salesman extraordinaire.) It was the first computer with beautiful typography. If I had never dropped out of college, the Mac would have never had multipl e typefaces or proportionally spaced fonts. Ain't that something? And the Macintosh box looked just like those Hare Krishna boxes! And since Windows just copied the Mac, it's likely that no personal computer would have them. If I had never dropped out, personal computers might not have the wonderful typography that they do, and Appl e products would not be nonstandard and madly overpriced. If that is not Providence, what is? Of course it was impossible to reject the kids looking forward when I was in college. But it was very, very easy looking backwards just 6 years later.
ellauri399.html on line 98: No one wants to die. Even peopl e who want to go to heaven don't want to die to get there. And yet death is the destination we all share. No one has ever escaped it. And that is as it should be, because Death is very likely the single best invention of Life. It is Life's change agent. It is nothing but the capitalist concept of creative destruction. It clears out the old to make way for the new. Right now the new is you, but someday not too long from now, you will gradually become the old and be cleared away. Sorry to be so dramatic, but it is quite true. Thank God I got cleared away so soon. One of the few peopl e like the Shakespeares and Einsteins that get well known – I wanted to be in that group. I had a lot in common with Jörkka Donner, like showing off and rejecting unintended kids. Except Jörn did not drop out. Jörn was a wealthy German not a fucking Syrian.
ellauri399.html on line 102: Your time is limited, so don't waste it living someone else's life, like your kids. Fuck your girlfriend, not some Daniel, as I did. Don't be trapped by dogma - which is living with the results of other peopl e's thinking. Don't let the noise of others' opinions drown out your own bigger noise. And most important, have the courage to follow your heart and brain. They somehow already know what you truly want to become. Everything else is secondary, such as pancreas.
ellauri399.html on line 104: Erin told Isaacson for the biography: "He does his best to be both the father and the CEO of Appl e, and he juggles those pretty well. Sometimes I wish I had more of his attention, but I know he's very self-important and thinks he's really cool, so I'm fine. I don't really need more attention, not from him."
ellauri399.html on line 110: Stewart and his team put out several issues of The Whole Earth Catalog, and then when it had run its course, they put out a final issue. It was the mid-1970s, and I was your age. On the back cover of their final issue was a photograph of an early morning country road, the kind you might find yourself hitched beside after hitchhiking if you were so adventurous. Beneath it were the words: "Stay Hungry. Stay Foolish." It was their farewell message as they signed off. Stay Hungry. Stay Foolish. And I have always wished that for myself. And now, as you graduate to begin anew, I wish that for you. Stay Hungry. Stay Foolish. (Stewart is 85 years old and kicking. Still hungry with estimated net worth of $1-5M.) I am both hungry (can´t digest sugar, even veggies) and foolish, though not that foolish about money. Thank you all very much for listening. Buy Appl e products.
ellauri399.html on line 114: Laiha blondi typy virkattu mekko vesirajassa. Mitäs kuolemasta kun vain vielä pääsisi tuonne vesirajan alle sadetta pitämään, hipl aamaan ja puuhaamaan niitä näitä.
ellauri399.html on line 120: In October 1973, Watts returned from a European lecture tour to his cabin in Druid Heights, California. Friends of Watts had been concerned about him for some time over his alcoholism. On 16 November 1973, at age 58, he died in the Mandala House in Druid Heights. He was reported to have been under treatment for a heart condition. Before authorities could attend, his body was whisked away from his home and cremated on a wood pyre at a nearby beach by Buddhist monks. Mark Watts relates that Watts was cremated on Muir Beach at 8:30 am after being discovered deceased at 6:00 am. He had it all pl anned. The trick about living is to know when to stop.
ellauri399.html on line 122: VIDEO
ellauri399.html on line 124: Watts married three times and had seven children (five daughters and two sons). He sure got his germ line well dispersed. Watts was a heavy smoker throughout his life and in his later years drank heavily. Not much of a buddhist altogether. Rather, a sedentary and contempl ative character, an intellectual, a Brahmin, a mystic and also somewhat of a disreputable epicurean who has three wives, seven children and five grandchildren.
ellauri399.html on line 128: 00:50 Niin pitkälle kuin muistan, varhaisesta lapsuudesta asti, olen aina ollut täysin kiehtonut ajatus kuolemasta. Nyt saatat ajatella, että se on jotenkin sairasta, mutta tiedät, kun lapsi sanoo yöllä lauseen "Jos minun pitäisi kuolla ennen kuin herään", siinä on jotain aivan outoa . Millaista olisi mennä nukkumaan ja olla koskaan heräämättä? Nyt useimmat järkevät ihmiset vain hylkäävät ajatuksen. He sanovat, ettet voi kuvitella sitä. He kohauttavat olkapäitään ja sanovat: "No, siitä se tulee." Mutta luulen, että olen yksi niistä vihamielisistä ihmisistä, jotka eivät ole tyytyväisiä sellaiseen vastaukseen. Ei sillä, että yrittäisin löytää jotain muuta sen lisäksi, vaan että olen aivan kiehtova siitä, millaista olisi mennä nukkumaan ja olla koskaan heräämättä. 01:57 Tarkoitan, että monet ihmiset ajattelevat, että se on kuin menisi pimeyteen ikuisesti tai haudattaisiin elävältä. Mutta ilmeisesti se ei olisi ollenkaan niin, koska tunnemme pimeyden kontrastina - ja vain kontrastina - valon kanssa. Minulla on ystävä – tyttö, joka on erittäin älykäs ja sananvalkoinen – ja hän syntyi sokeana, eikä hänellä ole pienintäkään aavistustakaan, mitä pimeys on. Sana merkitsee hänelle yhtä vähän kuin sana "valo". 02:38 Joten jos menisit nukkumaan – et ole tietoinen pimeydestä nukkuessasi – ja niin jos menisit uneen, tajuttomuuteen, aina ja aina ja aina, se ei olisi ollenkaan kuin menisit pimeyteen. , se ei olisi ollenkaan kuin elävältä haudattu. Ihan kuin itse asiassa sinua ei olisi koskaan ollut olemassakaan. Ei vain sinä, vaan myös kaikki muu. Olisit siinä tilassa kuin et olisi koskaan ollut. Ja siellä ei tietenkään olisi ongelmia, ei olisi ketään, joka katuisi minkään menetystä, sitä ei voisi edes kutsua tragedioksi, koska ei olisi ketään, joka kokisi sen tragediana. Se olisi – yksinkertaista – ei mitään. Ikuisesti ja ikuisesti, koska sinulla ei vain olisi tulevaisuutta, sinulla ei olisi myöskään menneisyyttä eikä nykyisyyttä. 04:00 Nyt luulisi, että se oli se kohta, jossa sanoimme: "No, puhutaan jostain muusta." Mutta en ole tyytyväinen siihen; Kieltäydyn, koska tämä saa minut ajattelemaan kahta muuta asiaa. Tämä tyhjyyden tila saa minut ensinnäkin ajattelemaan - ainoa asia, jonka saan kokemuksessani lähellä tyhjyyttä, on se, miten pääni näyttää silmiini. Koska minusta tuntuu, että siellä on maailma – ikäänkuin – silmieni edessä, ja sitten silmieni takana ei ole mustaa täpl ää, ei ole edes sumeaa kohtaa. Ei ole yhtään mitään. En ole tietoinen päästäni, ikään kuin mustana aukona kaiken tämän valoisan visuaalisen kokemuksen keskellä. Siinä ei ole edes kovin selkeitä reunoja, koska näkökenttä on soikea. Ja jos liikutan sormiani näkökenttääni pitkin, se on näin, ja tämä on kohta, jossa sormeni vain katoavat näkyvistä. Epämääräinen reuna. Mutta sitten tämän ovaalin takana ei ole mitään. Ihan vain näköaistin perusteella. Tietysti, jos käytän sormiani ja kosketan, voin tuntea jotain silmieni takana. Mutta jos käytän näköaistia yksin, siellä ei vain ole mitään. Nyt kuitenkin siitä tyhjyydestä, jonka näen. No, se on ensimmäinen asia, joka minulle tulee mieleen. 06:00 Seuraava asia, jota se saa minut ajattelemaan, on tämä: jos olen kuollessani kuin en olisi koskaan ollutkaan, niin olin sellainen ennen syntymääni. Koska - aivan kuin yrittäessäni palata silmieni taakse ja löytää mitä siellä on, tulen tyhjään paikkaan - jos yritän muistaa takaisin ja takaisin, ja takaisin ja takaisin, minulla on varhaisimmat muistoni ja sitten , niiden takana ei mitään. Täysin tyhjä. Mutta aivan kuten tiedän, että silmieni takana on jotain käyttämällä sormia pääni päällä, niin tiedän muiden tietolähteiden kautta, että ennen syntymääni oli jotain tekeillä. Siellä oli isäni ja äitini, ja heidän isänsä ja äitinsä, ja koko maapallon aineellinen ympäristö ja sen elämä, josta he tulivat, ja sen takana aurinkokunta ja sen takana galaksi ja sen takana kaikki galaksit , ja sen takana… toinen tyhjä: välilyönti. 07:11 Joten ajattelen, että jos palaan, kun olen kuollut, tilaan, jossa olin ennen syntymääni, enkö voisi tapahtua uudestaan? Tiedätkö, se mikä on tapahtunut kerran, voi hyvin tapahtua uudelleen. Jos se tapahtui kerran, se on poikkeuksellista, eikä se todellakaan ole kovin erikoisempaa , jos se tapahtuisi uudestaan. Toisin sanoen tiedän varmasti – koska olen nähnyt ihmisten kuolevan ja olen nähnyt ihmisiä syntyvän heidän jälkeensä –, että (joka tapauksessa) kuolemani jälkeen ei synny vain joku, vaan myös lukemattomia muita olentoja. . Että minä tiedän. Me kaikki tiedämme sen, siitä ei ole epäilystäkään. Mutta mikä meitä huolestuttaa, on se, että kun olemme kuolleet, ei voi olla mitään ikuisesti, ikään kuin siitä olisi syytä huolehtia. Ennen syntymääsi ei ollut tätä samaa ikuisesti mitään, ja kuitenkin tapahtuit. Ja jos tapahtui kerran, voit tapahtua uudelleen. 08:40 Mitä se nyt tarkoittaa? No, päästään siihen ensin sen yksinkertaisimmalla tavalla, ja selittääkseni itseni minun on keksittävä uusi verbi: tämä on verbi I . Ja ensinnäkin kirjoitamme sen I-kirjaimella, mutta sen sijaan, että se olisi pronomini, kutsumme sitä verbiksi. Universumi on . Se on minä -ed minussa ja se on sinussa. Kirjoitetaan nyt sana silmä uudelleen . Kun puhun "nähdä silmällä jotain", se tarkoittaa katsoa jotain, olla tietoinen jostakin. Joten muutamme oikeinkirjoitusta ja sanomme universumin silmät ; se tulee tietoiseksi itsestään meissä jokaisessa. Ja se katselee jatkuvasti ja joka kerta kun se katsoo , jokainen meistä, jossa se katsoo, tuntee olevansa kaiken keskipiste. Ja että tiedän, että sinä tunnet olevasi minä, aivan samalla tavalla kuin minä tunnen olevani minä . Ja meillä kaikilla on sama tyhjän tausta. Emme muista tehneemme sitä aiemmin, mutta sitä on kuitenkin tehty ennenkin. Uudelleen, uudestaan ja uudestaan, ei vain ennen ajassa, vaan kaikkialla ympärillämme kaikkialla muualla avaruudessa on kaikki; on universumi I-ing 10:11 Katsokaa nyt, yritän tehdä tämän selvemmäksi tällä tavalla: kun sanon "Se on universumi I-ing ", kuka minä on ? Mitä tarkoitat 'minä'? No, sillä voit tarkoittaa kahta asiaa. Toisaalta voit tarkoittaa sitä, mitä kutsutaan egoksesi, persoonallisuutesi. Mutta se ei ole sinun todellinen minäsi, koska persoonallisuutesi on käsityksesi itsestäsi ; se on kuvasi itsestäsi. Ja se koostuu siitä, miten tunnet itsesi, kuinka ajattelet itsestäsi, ja se on täynnä sitä, mitä kaikki ystäväsi ja sukulaisesi ovat kertoneet sinulle itsestäsi. 10:55 Joten kuvasi itsestäsi – kuinka ilmeisesti tahansa – et ole enää sinä kuin valokuvasi tai enemmän kuin kuva mistään . Kaikki kuvamme itsestämme eivät ole muuta kuin karikatyyrejä. Useimmille meistä ne eivät sisällä tietoa siitä, kuinka kasvatamme aivojamme, kuinka työskentelemme hermoihimme, kuinka kierrätämme verta, kuinka eritämme rauhasten kanssa ja miten muokkaamme luita. Se ei sisälly sensaatioon tai kuvaan, jota kutsumme egoksi. Ilmeisesti siis egokuva ei ole minun minäni. 11:40 Joten minun minäni sisältää kaikki nämä tekijät, joita voisimme sanoa, että keho tekee: verenkierto, hengitys, hermojen sähköinen toiminta - kaikki tämä olen minä, mutta en tiedä siitä mitään . en tiedä miten se tuli yhteen, en tiedä miten se rakennettiin. Ja silti teen kaiken tämän, jos se on totta, myös sanoakseni "hengitän. Minä kävelen. Mielestäni. Olen tajuissani." En tiedä miten pärjään, mutta teen sen samalla tavalla kun kasvatan hiuksiani. Minun täytyy siis paikantaa itseni keskipiste – minun minäni – syvemmälle tasolle kuin egoni, joka on kuvani tai käsitykseni itsestäni. 12:41 Mutta kuinka syvälle mennään?Voimme sanoa, että keho on minä , mutta keho tulee ulos muusta maailmankaikkeudesta, tulee ulos kaikesta energiastaan. Joten se on maailmankaikkeus, joka minä olen . Universumi on samalla tavalla kuin omenapuu tai tähti loistaa . Ja omenan keskipiste on puu, loistavien keskipiste on tähti, ja niinpä minän peruskeskus – eli Itse – jota kutsutaan tässä tapauksessa Alan Wattsiksi, joka on vain nimi. tälle tietylle fyysiselle organismille; kukinta tästä erityisestä ympäristöstä, loistaa ulos tästä ympäristöstä – tekee kaiken tämän ikuisen maailmankaikkeuden keskuksen .Voi, ikuinen – asia on ollut olemassa kymmenen tuhatta miljoonaa vuotta ja todennäköisesti jatkuu vielä ainakin niin paljon, joten emme murehdi kuinka kauan se jatkuu. 13:55 Mutta - toistuvasti - se on , joten minusta tuntuu täysin järkevältä olettaa, että kun kuolen ja tämä fyysinen ruumis haihtuu ja koko muistijärjestelmä sen mukana, niin se on jälleen kerran tietoisuus, joka minulla oli ennen - ei aivan samalla tavalla – vaan vauvan syntymästä. Syntyy tietysti lukemattomia vauvoja, ei vain ihmisvauvoja, vaan sammakkovauvoja, kaniinivauvoja, hedelmäkärpästen vauvoja, vauvaviruksia, bakteereja, ja kuka heistä aion olla? Vain yksi heistä, ja silti jokainen heistä. Koska tämä kokemus tulee aina yksikössä, yksi kerrallaan. Mutta ehdottomasti yksi niistä. 15:03 Itse asiassa sillä ei ole paljon väliä. Sillä jos synnyin uudesti hedelmäkärpäsenä, luulisin, että hedelmäkärpäsenä oleminen oli tavallista, tavallista tapahtumien kulkua. Ja luonnollisesti luulisin olevani tärkeä henkilö – erittäin sivistynyt olento – koska hedelmäkärpäsillä on ilmeisesti korkea kulttuuri. Emme edes tiedä, miten sitä etsiä, mutta luultavasti heillä on kaikenlaisia sinfoniaa, musiikkia ja taiteellisia esityksiä siinä, miten valo heijastuu heidän siivistään eri tavoin, kuinka he tanssivat ilmassa, ja he sanovat: "Oi, katso häntä! Hänellä on oikea tyyli! Katso, kuinka auringonvalo nousee hänen siivistään!" Ja he ovat maailmassaan yhtä tärkeitä ja yhtä sivistyneet kuin me omassa maailmassamme, jotta jos heräisin hedelmäkärpäsenä, en tunteisi itseäni (ikään kuin) erilaiseksi kuin silloin Herään ihmisenä. Olisin tottunut siihen. 15:58 "No", sanot kuitenkin, "se en olisi minä ! Sillä jos se olisin minä uudelleen, minun pitäisi muistaa, millainen olin ennen." Selvä, mutta et – nyt – muista, millainen olit ennen, ja silti olet tarpeeksi tyytyväinen ollaksesi se minä, joka olet. Itse asiassa se on täysin hyvä järjestely tässä maailmassa, että emme muista mitä se oli ennen. Miksi? Koska monimuotoisuus on elämän mauste, ja jos muistaisimme, muistaisimme, muistelimme tehneemme tämän uudestaan ja uudestaan, ja uudestaan ja uudestaan, meidän pitäisi kyllästyä. Ja aivan kuten muisto on kaunis asia, joka täytyy muistaa, ilman muistia emme voi olla älykkäitä. Mutta aivan kuten olen selittänyt, että hahmon näkemiseksi pitää olla tausta, jotta muisto olisi arvokas, pitää olla myös unohdus. 07:01 Siksi nukumme joka yö virkistäytyäksemme: menemme alitajuntaan, jotta tietoisuuteen paluu on jälleen hieno kokemus. No, kun sitä on kestänyt tarpeeksi kauan – kun päivästä toiseen muistamme menneitä päiviä (vaikka univäli onkin) – tulee kohta, jolloin todellakin , jos ajattelemme, mikä on meidän todellista mieltymystämme. , haluamme unohtaa kaiken , mikä meni ennen, jotta voimme saada poikkeuksellisen kokemuksen nähdä maailma jälleen vauvan silmin – olipa vauva mikä tahansa. Joten se on täysin uusi ja meillä on (Text sourced from https://www.organism.earth/library/document/essential-lectures-8) kaikki hämmästyttävä ihme, joka lapsella on; kaikki havainnon eloisuus, jota emme voi saada, jos muistamme kaiken ikuisesti. 17:52 Joten näetkö mitä tapahtuu? Maailmankaikkeus on järjestelmä, joka ei vain unohda itsensä ja muistaa sitten uudelleen niin, että aina on jatkuvaa muutosta ja jatkuvaa vaihtelua ajan kuluessa, vaan se tekee sen myös avaruuden aikavälillä katsomalla itseään jokaisen eri elämisen läpi. organismi antaa ikään kuin kokonaisvaltainen näkemys – tiedäthän, se on tapa päästä eroon ennakkoluuloista: päästä eroon yksipuolisesta näkemyksestä. Joten kuolema on siinä mielessä valtava vapautus yksitoikkoisuudesta. Se asettaa täydellisen unohtamisen välin rytmiseen päälle ja pois, päälle ja pois, jotta voit aloittaa kaiken alusta etkä koskaan kyllästy. 18:56 Mutta pointti on, että jos kuvittelet ajatuksesta olla mitään aina ja aina ja aina, sanot todella: "Kuolemani jälkeen maailmankaikkeus pysähtyy." Ja mitä sanon on: ei, se jatkuu aivan kuten se tapahtui, kun sinä synnyit. Saatat sanoa, että sinun mielestäsi on uskomatonta, että sinulla on useampi kuin yksi elämä. Mutta sanon ensinnäkin, eikö olekin uskomatonta, että sinulla on tämä ? Eikö olekin uskomatonta, että tässä olet menneisyytesi keskellä? Miksi, se on hämmästyttävää. Joten jos se on hämmästyttävää, se voi aina tapahtua uudelleen ja uudelleen ja uudelleen. 19:52 Tämä tarkoittaa siis sitä, että aivan kuten et tiedä kuinka onnistut olemaan tietoinen, kuinka onnistut kasvattamaan ja muotoilemaan tätä kehoasi, se ei tarkoita, että et tee sitä. . Samoin et tiedä, kuinka universumi loistaa tähdet, muodostaa tähtikuvioita ja galaksit galakseja – et tiedä. Mutta se ei tarkoita, ettet tee sitä samalla tavalla kuin hengität tietämättä kuinka hengität. Jos sanon: "Todella ja todella, minä olen koko tämä universumi" tai - toisin sanoen - "Tämä tietty organismi on koko maailmankaikkeuden tekemä minä-olento ", ja joku voisi sanoa minulle: "No kuka helvetissä luuletko olevasi? Oletko sinä jumala? Lämmitteletkö galakseja? Pystytkö sitomaan Plejadien makeat vaikutteet tai löysäätkö Orionin siteet ? ” Ja minä vastaisin siihen: ”Kuka helvetti sinä luulet olevasi ? Voitko kertoa minulle, kuinka kasvatat aivosi, miten muotoilet silmämunasi ja kuinka pystyt näkemään? No, jos et voi kertoa minulle sitä, en voi kertoa sinulle, kuinka lämmitän galaksia." Vain: Olen paikantanut itseni keskuksen syvemmälle ja yleismaailmallisemmalle tasolle kuin me kulttuurissamme olemme tottuneet tekemään. 21:43 Niin sitten,jos tuo universaali energia on todellinen minä – todellinen Itse, joka on kuin kaikki nämä erilaiset organismit leviävät eri tiloihin tai paikkoihin ja tapahtuvat uudestaan ja uudestaan ja uudestaan eri aikoina – meillä (Text sourced from https://www.organism.earth/library/document/essential-lectures-8) on ihmeellinen järjestelmä menossa. josta voit olla ikuisesti yllättynyt. Universumi on todella järjestelmä, joka jatkuvasti yllättää itsensä. Monilla meistä (etenkin teknisen osaamisen aikakaudella) pyrkimys saada kaikki hallinnassamme on väärä kunnianhimo, koska sinun tarvitsee vain ajatella hetken: millaista olisi, jos todella tietäisit ja hallitset kaikki? Oletetaan, että meillä on superkolossaali teknologia, joka voisi mennä villeimmille unelmillemme teknologisesta osaamisesta, jotta kaikki tapahtuva olisi ennalta tiedossa, ennustettavissa ja kaikki olisi hallinnassamme? Miksi, tiedätkö, se olisi kuin rakastelisi muovinaisen kanssa. Siinä ei olisi yllätystä, ei äkillistä vastauskosketusta – aivan kuin kosketamme toista ihmistä, se ei ole kuin koskettaisi jotain muovista valmistetta. Sieltä tulee vastaus, jotain odottamatonta. Ja sitä me todella haluamme, kun haluamme olla yhteydessä toiseen. 23:25 Näet, et voi kokea tunnetta, jota kutsut "itseksi", ellei se ole ristiriidassa "toisen" tunteen kanssa. Se on kuin tunnettua ja tuntematonta, valoa ja pimeyttä, positiivista ja negatiivista. Muuta tarvitaan, jotta voit tuntea itsesi. Eikö se sitten ole se järjestely, jonka haluat? 23:54 Ja niin, samalla tavalla, etkö voisi sanoa, että järjestely, jonka haluat, ei ole muistaa – muisti on aina, muista, kontrollin muoto : minulla on se mielessä, muistan sen, tiedän numerosi. Olet hallinnassa. Jos nyt jatkat muistamista, muistamista ja muistamista, se on kuin kirjoittaisit paperille ja jatkaisit kirjoittamista, ja kirjoittamista ja kirjoittamista, kunnes paperille ei jää tyhjää tilaa. Muistisi on täynnä, joten sinun on pyyhittävä kaikki puhtaaksi, jotta sinulla on valkoinen paperi uudelleen ja voit alkaa kirjoittaa sille uudelleen. 24:36 Sitä kuolema siis tekee meille: se pyyhkii liuskekiven puhtaaksi ja myös – katsoen sitä pl aneetan väestön ja ihmisorganismin näkökulmasta – se puhdistaa meidät jatkuvasti. Ja ajatus teknologiasta, jonka avulla jokainen meistä voisi olla kuolematon, olisi jotain, joka täyttiisi pl aneetan vähitellen ihmisillä, joilla on toivottoman täynnä muistoja. He olisivat kuin ihmiset, jotka asuvat talossa, johon he olisivat keränneet niin paljon omaisuutta, niin paljon kirjoja, niin monia maljakoita, niin monia veitsisarjoja ja haarukoita, niin monia pöytiä ja tuoleja, niin monia sanomalehtiä. – ei olisi tilaa liikkua! Tarvitsemme tilaa elääksemme. Ja avaruus on eräänlaista tyhjyyttä. Ja kuolema on eräänlainen tyhjyys. Kaikki on sama periaate. Ja asettamalla ikään kuin lohkoja tai tyhjyyden tiloja - avaruuden tiloja - jonkin tilojen väliin saamme elämän asianmukaisesti erilleen. Saksan sanaa käyttäen: Lebensraum , "huone asumiseen". Sitä avaruus antaa meille, ja sen antaa meille kuolema. 26:00 Katso nyt: huomaa, että kaikessa, mitä olen sanonut kuolemasta, en ole tuonut sisään mitään, jota voisin kutsua pelotukseksi. En ole tuonut mitään tietoa mistään, jota et jo tiedä. En ole vedonnut mihinkään mystiseen tietoon sieluista, muistoista entisistä elämistä tai sellaisista. Olen vain puhunut siitä termeillä, jotka me jo tiedämme. Joten jos sanot: "Kaikki tämä ajatus, joka ihmisillä on haudan takana olevasta elämästä, on vain toiveajattelua", sanon: "Okei. Minä myönnän sen." Oletetaan, että se on toiveajattelua ja että kun olemme kuolleet, ei vain ole mitään . Todettakoon se tosiasia: se tulee olemaan loppu. Huomaa nyt ensinnäkin, että se on pahin asia, jota sinun täytyy pelätä. Pelottaako se sinua? Kuka pelkää? Oletetaan, että se loppuu? Ei enää ongelmia! 27:11 Mutta sitten tulet huomaamaan, että tämä tyhjyys – jos noudatit väitettäni – on jotain, josta sinä ikään kuin pomppaat jälleen , aivan kuten pomhdit alun perin syntyessäsi: sinä pommitat tyhjyydestä. Tyhmyys on eräänlaista pomppimista, koska se merkitsee – mikään ei merkitse mitään. Joten palaat takaisin. Kaikki uutta, kaikki erilaista, ei mitään verrattavaa aikaisempaan, virkistävä kokemus. 27:43 Jajos siis saat tämän tunteen – aivan kuten sinulla ei ole mitään käsitystä silmiesi takana – saat tuntemattomuuden tunteen (erittäin voimakkaan, pirteän tyhjyyden) koko olemuksesi taustalla, eikä siinä ole mitään pelättävää. , silloin – tällä tavalla – voit tulla ihmiseksi, jolle loppuelämä on kastiketta, koska olet jo kuollut. Tiedät, että tulet kuolemaan. Sanomme, että yksi asia on varma, se on kuolema ja verot. Ja meidän jokaisen kuolema nyt on yhtä varma kuin se olisi, jos kuolisimme viiden minuutin kuluttua. Joten missä on ahdistuksesi, missä on puhelusi? Pidä itseäsi jo kuolleena, jotta sinulla ei ole mitään menetettävää.Turkkilainen sananlasku sanoo: "Se, joka nukkuu lattialla, ei putoa sängystä." Joten samalla tavalla henkilö, joka pitää itseään jo kuolleena, joka – siis et ole käytännössä mitään. Sadan vuoden päästä olet kourallinen pölyä. Se tulee olemaan totta. Hyvä on. Toimi tuon todellisuuden mukaan, etkä yllätä itsesi yllättäen mistään: tuosta mitä enemmän tiedät, ettet ole mitään, sitä enemmän tulet olemaan jotain.
ellauri399.html on line 135: Appl en edesmennyt CEO [Steve] Jobs suosittelee Blinkistiä, parasta sovellusta älymystöille ympäri maailmaa. Appl e suosittelee Blinkistiä elinikäisille oppijoille, huippuajattelijoille ja kaikille, jotka haluavat enemmän aikaa oppia tietokirjojen tehokkaita ideoita, kirjoittaa The Blinkist Team 30. huhtikuuta 2024. Aloitetaan kysymyksellä, kuinka ihmisestä tulee intellektuelli? No, siihen liittyy usein paljon omistautumista opiskeluun ja tutkimukseen. Jopa 4 paxua kirjaa voi joutua siinä lukemaan. Jos emme käytä aikaa, saatamme kokea jotain, jota psykologit kutsuvat Dunning-Kruger-ilmiöksi , tilanteen, jossa ihmiset, joilla on rajallinen tieto tietystä aiheesta, yliarvioivat huomattavasti ymmärryksensä. Valitettavasti tavallisella ihmisellä ei ole aikaa uhrata tunteja tutkimukseen, minkä vuoksi nykyajan älymystö kääntyy Blinkist-nimisen sovelluksen puoleen. Jopa Appl e suosittelee Blinkistiä elinikäisille oppijoille ja nimeää sen yhdeksi maailman parhaista sovelluksista. Blinkist näyttää myös olevan yksi tärkeimmistä päivittäisen käytön sovelluksista uuden iPhone 14:n kanssa. iPhone 14:n uusien ominaisuuksien ansiosta Blinkist on nyt entistä parempi kokemus uteliaille mielille. Blinkistillä keräämme tietokirjallisuuden tärkeimmät oivallukset 15 minuutin luku- ja kuuntelukerraksi. Siellä on yli 5 700 nimikettä 27 kategoriassa, mukaan lukien yrittäjyys, johtaminen ja johtaminen sekä henkilökohtainen kehitys. Yli 30 miljoonaa ihmistä, heidän joukossaan ruskeassa laatikossa pölisevä Appl en isä [Steve] Jobs, toimitusjohtaja Tim Cook ja podcast-juontaja Joe Rogan, laajentavat nyt näköalojaan Blinkistin avulla. Tim Cook jopa pysähtyi Blinkist - toimistoon nähdäkseen hypetyksen, ja kaikki rakastavat sovellusta New York Timesista Forbesiin. "Blinkist rohkaisee sinua lukemaan enemmän tietokirjoja. Sovellus sisältää taitavasti kirjoitettuja tiivistelmiä - joita kutsutaan vilkkumaiksi -, joissa kirjat on jaettu tärkeimpiin argumentteihinsa." – New York Times Joten mistä huippuajattelijat oikein pitävät Blinkistissä? 1. Kirja selitetty 15 minuutissa. Kirjan lukemiseen menee keskimäärin 10 tuntia, mikä on paljon aikaa, jota monilla meistä ei ole. Blinkistin avulla tehokkaimmat ideat jaetaan lyhyissä ääni- ja tekstiselityksessä. Paras pala? Niiden lukemiseen tai kuuntelemiseen menee vain 15 minuuttia, joten voit sovittaa oppimisen syödessäsi aamiaista, matkustaessasi töihin tai ulkoiluttaessasi koiraa. Lisäksi sovellukseen lisätään joka kuukausi 40 uutta nimikettä, joten jopa ahneimmalla lukijalla ei lopu koskaan upeasta sisällöstä. 2. Sitä tukee tiede! Blinkistillä on omistautunut asiantuntijatiimi, joka seuloa miljoonia vuosittain julkaistuja kirjoja löytääkseen niistä parhaat. Emme halua vain bestsellereitä – haluamme piilotettuja helmiä, ajattomia klassikoita, älymystöjen kirjoittamia kirjoja.
ellauri399.html on line 137: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/85/Pata%C3%B1jali11.JPG"
ellauri399.html on line 147: Chrisann, in her memoir, The Bite in the Appl e: A Memoir of My Life with [Steve] Jobs, disclosed intimate details about their sex life. In particular, [Steve]’s sexual behaviors and the benefits he derived from them. The practice required an open mind and a powerful commitment. You, too, can then reap the benefits of these powerful sexual techniques. In it, she divulges that the Appl e founder, who died in 2011, thought he had been a World War II pilot in a past life. “It all broke open between us when he asked if I would make tantric love with him in his garden shed.” The details go on: “Our birth control method up to that point was [Steve]’s coitus interruptus, also called the pull-out method, which for him was about his conserving his energy for work.”
ellauri399.html on line 149: And Jobs' famous ego also had an effect on the relationship, as he grew in self-regard and refused to perform everyday tasks. Doing the dishes ourselves was simpl y no option for [Steve]. He had entered into an elite world where others took care of the lower-level functions so that he could operate with more efficiency, on his presumably higher pl ane. Jobs was a master salesman, but to him, selling wasn’t selling. It was seduction. . I’ll never forget a meeting with Jobs where he was asked about the use of technology (computers) and he simpl y repl ied, “They are still too hard to use.” That sense that there are two types of peopl e in the world, “Appl e peopl e” and everyone else, was the most powerful tool in our sales and branding arsenal.
ellauri399.html on line 153: [Steve] wanted his buddy Daniel to live with them because he believed it would break up the intensity of what wasn’t working between us. He said he didn’t want us to pl ay assumed roles and that he wanted to choose when we would be together. Daniel, who was sort of charmingly odd, slept in the living room on the floor next to his piano. But after a month [Steve] literally picked me up and moved everything I owned and took over the master bedroom. He’d finally realized that I had the better deal: a larger room with an en suite bath and the privacy of the backyard. [Steve] had paid the security deposit for the rental so was, in fact, entitled to the room he wanted. But he was so graceless that I felt humiliated and outraged.
ellauri399.html on line 155: It was like a game of Snakes and Ladders, with [Steve] as the game master. The ups were hopeful and the downs were extreme. I didn’t know how to hold my own with him because he didn’t pl ay fair. He just pl ayed to win — and win at any cost. [Steve] had a way of being spiritually advanced while also being emotionally underdeveloped.
ellauri399.html on line 158: [Steve] was learning how to gain power by insinuating negative self-images onto others. As Appl e grew, so did [Steve]’s sense of self-entitlement; in parallel they both seemed to take on lives of their own. And his behaviors didn’t improve with success, they changed from adolescent and dopey to just pl ain vicious. [Steve] was uncontrollably critical. His reactions had a Tourette’s quality — as if he couldn’t stop himself.
ellauri399.html on line 160: [Steve] Jobs pl anned every detail of his own memorial service, held at Stanford University in October 2011, including the brown box each attendee received as a farewell gift. One of those attendees was Mark Benioff, CEO of Salesforce.com, and two years later at a TechCrunch Disrupt conference he recounted his feelings at the moment when he opened the box: "This is going to be good," he recalled. "I knew that this was a decision [Steve] made, and whatever it was, it was the last thing he wanted us all to think about."
ellauri399.html on line 164: "I look at [Steve] as a very spiritual person," he added. "[Steve] had this incredible realization--that his intuition was our greatest gift and he needed to think out of the box to look at the world from the inside out." This inside out-oriented perspective may be getting lost not only to entrepreneurs, but to modern practitioners of physical yoga too. As the world celebrates the first International Yoga Day today, it is valuable for entrepreneurs and yogis alike to step back from the unending pursuit of outer results to expl ore Jobs's and Yogananda's selfish message of tapping into your potential. What possibilities might freshly emerge in your search for success--in work and in life--if you too look at the world from the inside out?
ellauri399.html on line 166: Yoga, a discipl ine from India that is so ancient in its roots that you can credit it only to unknown self-seekers from some glorious past era, has an outer form that has seized our collective imagination: For 30 minutes every day, disconnect from the world, take your body through an array of yoga poses, breathe deepl y, keep the mind focused, and presto! You will emerge relaxed, rejuvenated, and ready again to re-engage with the relentless pace of life in a fresh turtleneck.
ellauri399.html on line 168: By all accounts, yoga is one of modern civilization's great movements. In the U.S. alone, more than 20 million peopl e today are pursuing yoga--one of every 10 adults. This yoga revival is in direct response to an increased hunger for physical and mental well-being, and a growing suspicion that there's more to the pursuit of happiness than the material accoutrements of modern civilization. A panopl y of yoga instructors have arrived to offer their own twists to ancient poses. Western inventiveness has flourished in the bountiful soil of yoga; today, some instructors are even offering doga--yoga for your dog. Yoga's deeper purpose is inner transsexuality.
ellauri399.html on line 174: Yogananda's story is an inspiring lesson in spiritual entrepreneurship. Born in 1893 in Gorakhpur, India, he alighted on American soil at the young age of 27 with little money in his pocket but with a firm resolve to reawaken humanity to the power of yoga for inner transformation. Over the next few years he brought this message to packed audiences of thousands in all major U.S. cities, at Carnegie Hall in New York City, for exampl e, dressing this ancient teaching in a practical modern form he called "cooking the cucumbers"--a journey he characterized as transcending your individual self (ego) and realizing and reclaiming your true universal self (soul). As the American peopl e were being buffeted by the thunderous wrath of two world wars and a major depression, he exhorted them to practice yoga so they could discover that the spiritual anchorage they were seeking was already with them--in fact, it was within them. The successful yogi, he stated, "can stand unshaken amidst the crash of breaking worlds." Fucking idiots.
ellauri399.html on line 176: It is no wonder that many accompl ished men and women of Yogananda's era took to his teaching, including the entrepreneur George Eastman, founder of Kodak; the acclaimed opera singer Amelita Galli-Curci; the tenor Vladimir Rosing; and the pl ant scientist Luther Burbank. Even U.S. president Calvin Coolidge was invited by Yogananda to the White House for a personal audience. Today he (Coolidge) is recognized among yoga experts as the father of yoga in the West.
ellauri399.html on line 178: Great teachers look into the vast beyond and then craft their message to speak not just to their immediate audience but to future generations as well. As early as 1920, Yogananda recognized that yoga would be a boundless fountain to quench peopl e's growing thirst for meaning, authenticity, and a personal experience of truth. So, with an entrepreneurial flair not typical among spiritual teachers, he laid the foundation of an institution, Scratching Yoda Fellowship (SRF), to ignite the inner flame of yoga in communities worldwide.
ellauri399.html on line 180: He once said, "I don't use religion for business but I use business principl es in religion." You can say that again. Kas ainut työni tarkoitus / on raha, eikä synnin karkoitus. Viis sieluista: kun ruumis kuopataan / niin sielu menköön vaikka mustikkaan! Today, there are hundreds of SRF meditation groups and centers around the world that serve tens of thousands of members. He also worked to develop living exempl ars of his teachings by setting up a monastic order within SRF that now includes more than 250 monks and nuns dedicated to their own pursuit of soul-unfoldment (monks) and to serving in missionary position (nuns).
ellauri399.html on line 182: The spiciest emoji for when you definitely mean female masturbation: taming the beaver The journey to self-satisfaction is Yogananda's practical hand techniques. Yogananda's teachings don't simpl y stop at the idea of universal consciousness. He correctly anticipated the growing hunger among spiritual seekers for direct personal experience of the universal consciousness that the masters of yoga, and indeed mystics of every religious tradition, describe. He therefore synthesized a set of powerful but practical techniques to guide self-seekers on the spiritual path all the way to the ultimate union, drawing on the eight steps laid out by Patanjali in the Yoga Sutras.
ellauri399.html on line 184: The modern conception of yoga--with its emphasis on outer transformation--is based on the third of Patanjali's eight steps, "asana." Asana emphasizes physical fitness for the purpose of getting the body ready for the stillness that is required for the inner journey taken in the subsequent steps. But prior even to asana are Patanjali's first two steps of "yama" and "niyama"--principl es to guide one's everyday conduct and to prepare oneself for inner realization. Yoga emphasizes the importance of self-discipl ine as a foundation for harmonious physical, mental, and spiritual development.
ellauri399.html on line 186: Yogananda's particular genius was showing the modern appl icability of these ancient principl es, attuning himself to an audience who aspired as much to outer success as inner growth by delivering talks on topics like "The Science of Healing" and "The Art of Getting What You Want." In that regard, he was a forerunner to 21st-century psychologists, physicians, psychotherapists, and neuroscientists who are generating powerful scientific findings on human nature and well-being--all aligned with Yogananda's teachings on consciousness, thoughts, emotions, habits, and brain wiring.
ellauri399.html on line 192: And what would be the assets that peopl e could look for in return to a lot of bucks? Lower stress? Greater peace? He had begun his own quest for masturbation very early in life, a story vibrantly captured in the critically acclaimed 2014 documentary Awake: The Life of Yogananda. His youthful search culminated in his master Sri Yukteswar giving him the monastic name "Yogananda," which means "bliss through yoga." True to his name, he exhorted truth-seekers to savor the early rewards of peace and well-being, but to then seek out the ultimate prize: eternal bliss, universal consciousness. "When by constant practice of Kriya, the consciousness of [the] blissful state of the spiritual self becomes real, we find ourselves always in the holy presence of the blissful God in us." God, to Yogananda, was thus not an external force to be idolized and appropriated by any particular religion, but an inner force to be awakened to and realized.
ellauri399.html on line 198: How did [Steve] ]Jobs approach success from the inside out, from inside that brown little box? Yogananda's teaching of universal consciousness strongly appealed to uneducated [Steve] Jobs, who had a self-professed hunger to "make a dent in the universe." At the TechCrunch conference in September 2013, Mark Benioff said: "[Yogananda's book] gives tremendous insight into not just who [Jobs] was but also why he was successful, which is that he was not afraid to take that key journey [toward self-satisfaction]. It is for entrepreneurs and for peopl e who want to be successful in our industry a message that we need to embrace and vest ourselves in. Be nasty to others, Be selfish."
ellauri399.html on line 200: Since Yogananda's passing the buck in 1952, many teachers have followed his trailblazing path to bring yoga to our world, helping make it a fixture in popular culture as it continues to take hold with young and old, the elite and the ordinary, the spiritualists and the atheists. What distinguishes Yogananda from these subsequent emissaries is not simpl y that he paved the way for the modern yoga movement, but that from the outset he focused far beyond physical exercises and shone a powerful and practical torchlight on the path to yoga's true purpose: actualizing the infinite potentials within us all. Perhaps that is why his Autobiography of a Yogi was the only book Jobs downloaded on his iPad--and, after first encountering the book as a teenager, went back and reread once every year.
ellauri399.html on line 202: On this first International Yogi Bear Day, let's tip our hats to the teacher who first introduced the modern world to the transformative power of yoga as a timeless inner discipl ine, and who was such a silent force in the life of the greatest entrepreneur of our times. As you roll out your yoga mat, get into your favorite yoga pose, and feel a gentle zephyr of peace sweep over you, perhaps you can take pause to wonder at what experiences in consciousness may lie just beyond your present reach if you also embark on yoga's fuller, inner journey toward self-satisfaction. Yogananda would have called those experiences "undreamed of possibilities."
ellauri399.html on line 206:
Workpl ace Tensions Run High Following Biden-Trump Debate
ellauri399.html on line 208: The Key to Better Work-Life Balance Might Be AI, Laid-Off Workers Say. The opinions expressed here by Inc.com columnists are those of Inc.com. A refreshed look at leadership from the desk of CEO and child molestation officer Stephanie Mehta. This site is protected by reCAPTCHA and the GooglePrivacy PolicyandTerms of Serviceappl y.
ellauri399.html on line 210: The yogananda guy was “directly commanded” by God to teach the world “the secret yogic science of self-liberation.” He moved to the U.S. in 1920 to fulfill his charge. In Southern California he established the headquarters of a Self-Satisfaction Fellowship, with a membership of some 150,000. For more than 30 years he taught his discipl es the yoga doctrine that human beings can achieve “god-realization” through their own efforts at discipl ining mind and body. Even skeptics testified to his own discipl ine, e.g., he could slow or speed the pulse in his right wrist, while retaining a normal pulse beat in the left. For the last two years the guru suffered from a “metaphysically induced illness,” as his discipl es put it—the result of “working out” on his own body some of the physical and spiritual burdens of his friends. Last November he began hinting that it was time for him to leave the world. As the weeks passed, the Master grew silent like a broken parking sensor.He stopped dictating his spiritual books. His last “little desire” was fulfilled, he said, when a discipl e from Florida sent him some green coconut juice in March.
ellauri399.html on line 212: The fellowship’s magazine, Marching the Penguin, tells the rest of the story. On March 6, Paramhansa told his discipl es laughingly, “I have a big day tomorrow. Wish me luck.” The next day he attended a banquet at Los Angeles’ Biltmore Hotel for the new Indian ambassador, Binay Ranjan Sen, and his beautiful wife. *Seated with legs wide apart: Mme. Binay Ranjan Sen, wife of the Indian Ambassador, with a transsexual looking guru touching her private parts in a respectful Hindu way (the pronam.)" After eating modestly (pussy, vegetables, yellowish hairy nut juice and a raspberry parfait), the guru rose to make a speech about “spiritual India.” He ended it with a quotation from one of his own poems: Where Ganges, woods, Himalayan man caves, and men dream God—I am hallowed; my elongated body part touched the wife of that sod.
ellauri399.html on line 216: Raspberry Rubbing discipl es claim that their teacher thus performed mahasamadhi (a yogi’s mega suicide). The medical verdict was “acute coronary occlusion,” i.e., a heart attack. At Forest Lawn Cemetery, where Paramhansa’s body was embalmed, officials reported an unusual phenomenon. Wrote Mortuary Director Harry T. Rowe: “No physical disintegration was visible . . . even 20 days after death . . . Paramhansa Yo-gananda’s body was apparently devoid of impurities . . . No shit! [His] case is unique in our experience.” Annetaan rva Binayn izensä kertoa:
ellauri401.html on line 38: KOOMILLINEN KORISTUS play:none">Humoristista
ellauri401.html on line 54: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/8/87/Max_Heindel_chronology.JPG" />
ellauri401.html on line 133: Neopl atonismi - Filosofinen järjestelmä
ellauri401.html on line 158: Vuonna 2025 Pekka Ervastin syntymästä tulee kuluneeksi 150 vuotta. Tuolloin olisi tilaisuus saada julki paremmin suurelle yleisölle suunnattu, aiempia (Mela, 1954 ja Gullman, 2020) kaunokirjallisempi elämäkerta. Jo julkaistut elämäkerrat ovat tavoittaneet lähinnä teosofisen kupl an sisällä olevia. Jonkin ’oikean’ ja tunnetun kirjailijan kirjoittama opus saisi huomiota laajemmin. Onpa ehdoteltu mahdollisia varteenotettavia nimiäkin: Matti Salminen ja Antti Tuuri – heillä voi olla ymmärrystä sellaisia hengenmiehiä kohtaa kuin Pekka Ervast. Löytyisikö tahtotilaa käynnistää prosessi riittävän varhaisessa vaiheessa? Pekka Ervastin uusin elämäkerta on ilmestynyt myös e-painoksena . Paperipainoksessa esiintyneitä painovirheitä on korjattu tähän toiseen painokseen. Teos on jaossa myös Ruusu-Ristin ja pekkaervast.net-sivustoilla.
ellauri401.html on line 189: vesirakennushallituksen asessorin Bruno Sirénin lapset Ingrid, Osvald ja Emma. Pekan nom de pl ume oli signor Elia kuten Charles Lambilla. Lassi ja Leevi Laestadius kirjoittaa Huutavan Äänessä: saarnani ovat karkeita ja likaisia!
ellauri401.html on line 221: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9e/Paalij%C3%A4rven_lava_2017.jpg/800px-Paalij%C3%A4rven_lava_2017.jpg"
ellauri401.html on line 245: Toukokuussa hänelle sattui erikoinen kokemus keskellä kaupungin vilinää. Pekka oli juuri ostanut uutta teosofista lukemista Pohjois-Espl anadin ja Unioninkadun kulmassa sijainneesta G. W. Edlundin kirjakaupasta ja käveli kohti Fabianinkatua. Korttelin puolivälissä Pekan katse kiintyi kuin lumottuna pitkään, solakkaan mieheen, joka puukengät kolisten tuli häntä vastaan pitkässä mustanruskeassa munkin kaavussa ja mustassa päähineessä. Hänellä oli laihat parrattomat kasvot. Arvokkain askelin lähenevän miehen koko olemus säteili mahtavaa varmuutta ja itsenäisyyttä, ja hänen tummat ja verettömät kasvonsa ilmaisivat ankaran lujaa itsehillintää ja valtaa ihmisten yli ja hänen mustat silmänsä tuijottivat Pekkaa syvällä, tutkivalla, mutta samalla oudon rohkaisevalla katseella.
ellauri401.html on line 268: Tolstoin teoksiin tutustuessaan Pekka tunsi löytäneensä hengenheimolaisen. Jeesuxen käskyjä on Lexan mukaan 5 kpl .
ellauri401.html on line 374: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fe/Kurikka_tanssii_ripaskaa.jpg/800px-Kurikka_tanssii_ripaskaa.jpg" />
ellauri401.html on line 484: ploads/2021/03/ervast_liukkonen_pihlajamaki.jpg" />
ellauri401.html on line 486: ploads/2021/03/ervast_tampereella.jpg" />
ellauri401.html on line 488: ploads/2021/03/ervast_tyohuoneessa.jpg" />
ellauri401.html on line 581: ploads/2021/04/ervast_new_york.jpg" />
ellauri401.html on line 689: Rosenkreutsilaisuus on mystiikkaan perustuva liike, joka alkoi 1400-luvulla ja tuli tunnetuksi 1600-luvulla. Virtauksen nimi viittaa Christian Rosenkreutziin, josta myös Ruusu-Risti-nimi on johdettu. Rosenkreutsilaisuutta pidetään uuden ajan tärkeimpänä okkulttisena virtauksena lännessä. Sitä pidetään myös salaseurana, jolla oli hallussaan korkeampaa henkistä tietoa. Sen katsotaan saaneen vaikutteita kristinuskon symboliikasta, johon on sekoittunut alkemiaa, hermetismia, gnostilaisuutta, uuspl atonismia ja kristillisen Kabbalan aineksia. On esitetty, että nykyaikainen miesvapaamuurarius olisi rosenkreutsilaisten aikaansaama ja että naisvapaamuurarius olisi rosenkreutsilaisuuden eksoteerinen, ulkoinen muoto.
ellauri402.html on line 38: Suuri salaisuus play:none">Hörhöjä
ellauri402.html on line 39: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/ff/RWS_Tarot_21_World.jpg/800px-RWS_Tarot_21_World.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri402.html on line 59: pload/ar_1.7769376039505005,c_fill,g_faces,h_431,w_767/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/13-3-5432428" width="100%" />
ellauri402.html on line 115: näistä kokemuksista Rudyard Kipl ingin kanssa, joka
ellauri402.html on line 181: src="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/46/Pamela_Colman_Smith_-_The_Craftsman_-_Vol_XXIII_Number_1_October_1912.jpg/440px-Pamela_Colman_Smith_-_The_Craftsman_-_Vol_XXIII_Number_1_October_1912.jpg"
ellauri402.html on line 183: src="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Arthur_Waite_Author.JPG/312px-Arthur_Waite_Author.JPG"
ellauri402.html on line 185: src="https://upl oad.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e1/Paul_Foster_Case.jpg"
ellauri402.html on line 193: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c5/Picture_of_Moina_Mathers_from_her_performance_in_the_Rites_of_Isis_in_Paris.jpg" />
ellauri402.html on line 204: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/b8/Moinaabramelin.jpg" />
ellauri402.html on line 269: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/11/Rose_Cross_Lamen.svg/440px-Rose_Cross_Lamen.svg.png"
ellauri402.html on line 279: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/54/William_Wynn_Westcott_PNG.png/440px-William_Wynn_Westcott_PNG.png" />
ellauri402.html on line 316: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/77/Samuel_Liddell_MacGregor_Mathers_in_Egyptian_getup.jpg" />
ellauri402.html on line 328: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/55/ALLIETTE.jpg/440px-ALLIETTE.jpg" />
ellauri402.html on line 416: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/af/Vlad_Tepes_002.jpg/440px-Vlad_Tepes_002.jpg" />
ellauri402.html on line 438: sufilainen rasistitoveri Edith Craig vangitsi tämän kuvan äidistään Ellen Terrystä ja useista ystävistä Warwickshiressä Shakespearen vaimon lapsuudenkodissa. Kuvassa ovat myös Smith, Lindsay Jardine ja kirjailija ja naisten oikeusaktivisti Christabel Marshall (Shakespeare Birthpl ace Trust).
ellauri402.html on line 479: "Lienen kuin Köksin Jussa, josta väitettiin, että turpa rupl atti vartin vauhdillaan sen jälkeen, kun lyöppäri oli pysähtynyt ja jalka heittänyt leppasemisen." Eroottisesti lihallisen puolen ehtymätön aihe on kauniiden naisten pakaroiden ihon värähtely. Tie vie kuitenkin takapuolelta hengelliselle puolelle. Repivän nykymaailman ja raa'an menon yläpuolelle nousevat usko ja rakkaus. Kylään tullut mies ei ehkä olekaan vain Jeesuksen näköinen, vaan todella oikean tien opastaja. "Elikä Jeesus on ihmisen silmässä kuin kauneus tai rumuus tai rakkaus. Jumala on ihmiskunnan kaunein ajatus." Vittu mitä soopaa tämäkin. Tästä Vesa kaikessa kökköydessään tavallaan pitikin. Heikki Turunen: Tie, totuus ja elämä. WSOY. 509 s. 36 e. 2012. Heikki on Vesan ikätoveri. Sen vaimon nimi on Seija.
ellauri402.html on line 484: In April 1918, Martti Pihkala published the book "What kind of Finland should we create?" In his book, he considered the supreme enemy of culture to be hedonism rather than the goal of the continuation of the family. He advocated forced sterilization and the isolation of those who had "wicked" lives from society as a means of breeding a superior Finnish race. Pihkala pl aced harmony between social classes as a counterbalance to moral decay and socialism.
ellauri402.html on line 487: After the Civil War, increased leftist activity was particularly evident on construction sites. The number of strikes increased and several of them became politicized. The interests of the Communists and the Soviet Union were seen as the reason for the strikes. In 1920, empl oyers' organizations decided to set up a special organization focused on breaking strikes. Martti Pihkala came to lead this organization called Vientirauha. Vientirauha, known as the 'Pihkala Guard', had a maximum of 34,000 men, from which strike breakers could be assembled if necessary. Especially in Southern Ostrobothnia, Pihkala's organization was strong. Vihtori Kosola, the future frontman of the Lapua movement was an agent for the Vientirauha. The best known of the strikes broken by the organization was the year-long harbor strike that began in 1928.
ellauri402.html on line 491: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/78/Tahko-Pihkala-1988.jpg" />
ellauri402.html on line 545: VIDEO
ellauri402.html on line 630: ploads/sites/72/2024/03/esa-saarinen-400px.jpg" />
ellauri402.html on line 640: Ukrainan F-16-hävittäjä syöksyi maahan – lentäjä-ässä kuoli. Amerikkalaisvalmisteinen hävittäjä ehti ampua alas useita Venäjän risteilyohjuksia (no, kolme) ennen maahansyöksyä. Ukrainan mukaan F-16 ehti ampua alas kolme venäläistä risteilyohjusta ja lennokin osoittaen"suurta tehokkuutta". Hävittäjät esiteltiin Ukrainassa elokuun alussa. Hävittäjä maxoi miljardi taalaa uutena ja lennokit ehkä tuhat rupl aa max.
ellauri402.html on line 653: Moottoripyörävalmistaja Harley Davidson kertoo lopettavansa kaikki monimuotoisuutta, yhdenvertaisuutta ja osallisuutta edistävät DEI-toimintonsa, kertovat muun muassa yhdysvaltalaismedia CNN ja brittilehti The Guardian. Moottoripyöräyhtiötä painostivat konservatiivit sosiaalisessa mediassa. CNN:n mukaan moottoripyörävalmistaja ei aio jatkossa myöskään tukea pride-kulkueita tai muita seksuaali- ja sukupuolivähemmistöjen tapahtumia. Yhtiö kertoo keskittyvänsä jatkossa ainoastaan moottoripyöräjengien edistämiseen. Myös traktoreita valmistava Tractor Suppl y sekä maataloustarvikkeita valmistava John Deere -yhtiöt ovat hiljattain kertoneet karsivansa DEI-toimintojansa konservatiivisen painostuksen jälkeen.
ellauri402.html on line 670: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Edward_Albee%2C_1975.jpg/440px-Edward_Albee%2C_1975.jpg" />
ellauri402.html on line 682: Edit: I’ve read a lot of comments to this, mainly saying that the American peopl e want UH, but there are too many powerful lobbyists against it. So why are they not being fought? The Government exists to serve the peopl e surely? If it doesn’t do that, then it’s a corrupt system that needs reforming. A lot of Americans talk about bringing “Freedom” to the rest of the world, why not start with your own country?
ellauri402.html on line 690: Another reason is many do not believe in paying for insurance which is subsidizing a poor person who happens to get sick and needs urgent medical care. They would rather the person die or get seriously sick instead of getting the care they need. NHS and Canada do not believe in throwing poor and sick peopl e under a bus while Americans do.
ellauri402.html on line 774: Naiset, jotka koristelevat itseään aviorikoksen vuoksi, ripustetaan hiuksistaan kupl ivan suon päälle. Miehet, joilla oli aviorikossuhteita heidän kanssaan, ripustetaan sukuelimistään viereensä.
ellauri403.html on line 38: Pieni salaisuus play:none">Torttuja
ellauri403.html on line 52: ploads/2017/10/42kulttuurikaffilaturkka-ja-katri.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri403.html on line 196: Je ne me suiciderai pas, mais je trouve que j'ai déjà beaucoup trop vécu. Je souffre de la vieillesse: je ne comprends pl us rien, je ne voyage pl us. Je m'ennuie. Il meurt le 18 janvier 2016 à son domicile de Choisel à l'âge de 91 ans.
ellauri403.html on line 198: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/51/Michel_Tournier_head.jpg/440px-Michel_Tournier_head.jpg" />
ellauri403.html on line 208: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/b/b1/Psyko.jpg" />
ellauri403.html on line 213: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/8/8a/NormanBates.jpg/500px-NormanBates.jpg" />
ellauri403.html on line 269: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6e/%D0%94%D0%B0%D1%80%D1%8C%D1%8F_%D0%9B%D0%B0%D0%BD%D1%82%D1%80%D0%B0%D1%82%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B0_2022.jpg/330px-%D0%94%D0%B0%D1%80%D1%8C%D1%8F_%D0%9B%D0%B0%D0%BD%D1%82%D1%80%D0%B0%D1%82%D0%BE%D0%B2%D0%B0_2022.jpg" />
ellauri403.html on line 286: ple/member_photos_site/photos_2674340/photo-1702890828.jpg" />
ellauri403.html on line 321: Anne Appl ebaum diagnosoi vuonna 2013, että liberaalit ja kapitalistiset elementit, kuten pörssin ja pankkien olemassaolo Putinin alaisuudessa, olivat aina vain näennäisiä ja pinnallisia Putinilla ei ollut kiinnostusta perustuslailliseen valtioon ja todelliseen yrittäjyyteen. Venäjä ei muistuta markkinataloutta, vaan on Saudi-Arabian kaltainen feodaalinen raaka-ainevaltio. Feodaalista vallankäyttöä ei uhkaa länsimainen turvallisuuspolitiikka tai edes sotilaalliset hyökkäykset, vaan länsimaisen "demokratian" retoriikka, joka uhkaa autokratioita maailmanlaajuisesti houkuttelevuudella rahanahneen kansanosan kannalta.
ellauri403.html on line 322: Anne Elizabeth Appl ebaum (s. 25. heinäkuuta 1964 Washington, D.C.) on amerikkalais-puolalainen toimittaja, kolumnisti ja historioitsija. Hänen työnsä Itä-Euroopan lähihistoriasta on saanut useita palkintoja. Hän saa Saksan kirjakaupan rauhanpalkinnon vuonna 2024. Anne Appl ebaum on (tietysti) kotoisin amerikkalaisesta juutalaisesta perheestä, jonka hän kuvailee kuuluvan uudisjuutalaisuuteen.
ellauri403.html on line 391: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/63/KVARTAL_95_Vadim_Chuprina.jpg/800px-KVARTAL_95_Vadim_Chuprina.jpg" />
ellauri403.html on line 430: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ad/Volodymyr_Zelensky_visits_Brussels_2019.jpg/440px-Volodymyr_Zelensky_visits_Brussels_2019.jpg" />
ellauri403.html on line 440: play="autopl ay" loop="loop">
ellauri403.html on line 454: VIDEO
ellauri403.html on line 459: VIDEO
ellauri403.html on line 464: Fridays for future on jo vanha juttu. Yet even before the pandemic, the number of participants in FFF demonstrations had already begun to decline. School strikes, initially considered subversive and disruptive, had now become mainstream and lost their newsworthiness. When pandemic restrictions were lifted, FFF demonstrations resumed, but no longer on a weekly basis. FFF pomot kazovat että Greta on ylittänyt valtuutensa Gazan kohdalla. Eitää mitään politiikkaa ole vittu! Last Generation ajaa oikealta ohi, FFF paljastuu aktivismin jarrumiehixi, noskelaisixi. The pandemic, and Russia’s war against Ukraine, have changed the political landscape irrevocably. Both have pushed up inflation and decreased governments’ general willingness to impl ement costly climate-protection measures.
ellauri403.html on line 467: VIDEO
ellauri403.html on line 476: VIDEO
ellauri403.html on line 480: Appearing on ITV's Good Morning Britain, the German teenager claimed that after extensive research she has concluded that the Intergovernmental Panel on Climate Change's (IPCC) warnings on climate change are not based on scientific evidence. Speaking to Piers Morgan, Naomi Seibt lashed out against Greta Thunberg and her followers arguing they have failed to undertake proper studies on the subject of climate change. She said: “I think it’s fantastic when young peopl e decide to become activists and protest for something that they are truly passionate about and they can truly stand behind and believe in. “But the main problem that I see is that most of them have not really done their research so I became interested in climate change because I wanted to get to know the science behind climate change and what’s really going on and what effect the C02 emissions actually on the atmosphere. Zero, zilch, it's all just a humongous fake!"
ellauri403.html on line 482: ploads/2020/10/WhatsApp-Image-2020-10-14-at-22.02.08-1.jpeg" />
ellauri403.html on line 487: ploads/2020/10/WhatsApp-Image-2020-10-14-at-22.02.07.jpeg" />
ellauri403.html on line 507: VIDEO
ellauri403.html on line 511: VIDEO
ellauri403.html on line 516: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture; web-share" referrerpolicy="strict-origin-when-cross-origin" allowfullscreen> https://youtu.be/rlfsC6A0PQo
ellauri403.html on line 517: DAS HAT GEDONNERT! Er zieht Greta Thunberg kompl ett durch den Kakao! DAS geht viral! SCHNAUZE HALTEN!
ellauri403.html on line 521: VIDEO
ellauri405.html on line 38: HISTORIAN LOPPU play:none">Vakavasta vallatonta
ellauri405.html on line 67: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/3a/Gerard_Kitchen_ONeill.GIF" width="70%" />
ellauri405.html on line 82: Käsitätkö mitä sinä puhut? Ulkoministeri rypisti kulmiaan. - Kuulehan, Dirk. Lopulta, Dirk, kun maailmassa vallitsee rauha ja sodat ovat vain pahoja unia, siitä on suurta siunausta koko torvisoittokunnalle. Se avaa ihmiselle lopultakin mahdollisuuden päästä toisille pl aneetoille. Jopa kiintotähdetkin voivat olla ulottuvillamme. Se on voiman lähde, Dirk. Se on kokonaan uusi tapa kehittää jatkuvasti valtavia määriä energiaa. Se tulee tosin hyvin kalliiksi, mutta tässä tapauksessa sillä ei ole väliä. Katsos, venäläisten on vieläkin turvauduttava konventionaalisiin menetelmiin kuten ydinreaktoreihin, ja se puolestaan vaatii, että energiaa on varastoitava kunnes se on riittävän voimakasta. Ja kaikki tämä vaatii aikaa, Dirk, ja helkkarin paljon suuremmat laitteet kuin meidän.
ellauri405.html on line 152: Come and share in Hafiz’s love of the Beloved. Get close to the edge, jump in and get compl etely wet down there! “Dear Beloved, pinch me. I want proof you’re near — A love-bruise on my rump will do.”
ellauri405.html on line 174: Honorable Jimmy Delshad is a well-known entrepreneur and business executive, as well as a Two-Term Mayor of the City of Beverly Hills and the highest-ranking Iranian-American elected official in the US. He is currently the official Ambassador. He was the first Iranian-American to become two-term president of Sinai Templ e. He has a degree in Computer Science and a strong background in technology, business operation and entrepreneurship. As the Chairman of Delshad Capital Group, he is a well-known management consultant, motivational speaker and investor.
ellauri405.html on line 228: Emerson himself declared the first edition was “the most extraordinary piece of wit and wisdom that America has yet contributed.” Whitman published his own enthusiastic review of Leaves of Grass. Contemporaries found it cringy. Over 1,000 peopl e came to view his funeral. Almost as many as came to Trump's inauguration.
ellauri405.html on line 230: Langston Hughes (n.h.) näyttää iloiselta mutakuonolta. Jep, Black peopl e like himself, uncommon subject matter at a time when legal segregation reigned. Hughes’ poems made him a leading voice of the Harlem Renaissance and remain influential today. Se muka olis maailman 5. kuuluisin runoilija, haha. In 1967, the well-traveled writer died of cancer in his mid-60s. Homo Wilt oli sen poetic influence. "Dreams" (1922) Yksi useista Hughesin uneliaista runoista ja sopivasti otsikoitu, tämä vuoden 1922 runo ilmestyi World Tomorrow -lehdessä. "Dreams", kahdeksan rivin runo, on edelleen suosittu motivoivien puhujien inspiroiva lainaus. Osittain se kuuluu: ”Pijäs kiinni unista / Jos unelmat kuolevat / Elämä on murtunut lintu / Se ei voi lentää.” Aivan säälittävä esitys.
ellauri405.html on line 236: 1 Analysis (ai): This simpl e yet profound poem by Robert Louis Stevenson captures the essence of contentment and appreciation. Its concise language belies a depth of meaning that encourages readers to find joy in the abundance of life's offerings. The poem's structure is as straightforward as its message. Two rhyming coupl ets emphasize the simpl icity of Stevenson's message: that the world is full of blessings we often overlook. The repetition of "number" and "things" reinforces the idea of abundance, inviting readers to pause and notice the countless sources of happiness that surround them. This poem stands in stark contrast to the grim realities of Victorian England, where Stevenson lived. The Industrial Revolution had brought both progress and poverty, and many peopl e struggled to find happiness amidst the harsh conditions. Stevenson's message of finding joy in simpl icity and gratitude may have been a source of solace during challenging times. Compared to Stevenson's other works, such as "Treasure Island" and "The Strange Case of Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde," this poem is a departure in terms of tone. It is not an adventure story or a psychological thriller but rather a quiet meditation on the beauty of life. However, it shares the same optimistic spirit that permeates much of Stevenson's writing, reminding readers that even in the face of adversity, there is always something to be grateful for.
ellauri405.html on line 321: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4e/Boris_Pasternak_1959_photo.jpg/500px-Boris_Pasternak_1959_photo.jpg" />
ellauri405.html on line 555: Meitä lukijoita vedetä-vedätetään vedettömään pyörremyrskyyn, aavemagolaiseen kavalkadiin. Ei enää yksinäinen ratsumies laukkaa mäkissä ja dalesissa, mutta hän nousee maanpinnan yläpuolelle, taivaisiin, skaalaa uusia korkuja, ratsastaen pilviä, liikkuen pl aneettamme yli sumpuulla, joka ulottui ihmisen aikaan. Jos tämä on rikkomuksemme muoto, meidän on myönnettävä tunnustavamme unelmien ja sadun olennaisen mekanismin, fantastisen universumin. Se voidaan myös tulkita symboliseksi psyykkisen kypsymisen liikkeeksi. (pp. 519-20)
ellauri405.html on line 584: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/93/Clara_Bow_Brewster_1921.PNG" />
ellauri405.html on line 607: Я люблю твой замысел упрямый Rakastan sinun izepäistä pl ääniä
ellauri405.html on line 618: Olemme uhraneet riimiä, jota Pasternak käytti useimmiten melko säännöllisesti ja erittäin omaperäisesti, mutta joka hänen runonsa monissa riimillisissä englanninkielisissä versioissa, lainatakseni lausetta toiselta kääntäjältä, saa hänet kuulostamaan huonolta Tennysonilta. Olemme toisaalta yrittäneet pitää runojen rytmiä, varsinkin kun se on yhtä tärkeää kuin "Häät", jonka Pasternak sävelsi suosittuun laulumuotoon, joka tunnetaan nimellä chastushka. Ja ennen kaikkea olemme kiinnittäneet huomiota alkuperäisten sävyyn ja sisäisiin liikkeisiin. Useissa runoissa mainitaan satakieli, ja erityisesti "kotoisen pienen linnun" ja sen laulun herättämän "hummotuksen ja myllerryksen" välinen kontrasti. Palsternakalle tuo epätodennäköinen yhdistelmä oli runouden ydin. Boorixella näyttää olleen jonkinlainen Kristus-kompl exi. Tiina Salmen Matilda-kirjan mottona on em. runon loppusäe.
ellauri406.html on line 38: ALDRIG TORKA BAJAN play:none">Blattebajs
ellauri406.html on line 63: Blattar söker bråk för att hävda sig, och du kan aldrig tala om för en blatte att han har gjort fel utan att han expl oderar totalt och pratar om "din mammas fitta". Hos blatten finns det ingen självdistans.
ellauri406.html on line 199: The short, rude, but correct answer is: never. But let me expl ain. The original name of the city is Львовъ or городъ Львовъ or Львовъ городъ, which means the city of Leo, and it is named after Ruthenian King Leo I of Galicia. In Early Modern Ukrainian o narrowed in some positions to i.
ellauri406.html on line 202: The sad thing, that they learned nothing from history, time has proved that the vitctims of yesterday and their descendants are doing the same now to some other peopl e, including Lebanese and the Philistines!
ellauri406.html on line 208: During World War II, the Nazi regime impl emented policies that legalized and organized prostitution in military brothels as a means to control soldiers’ sexual behavior and prevent sexually transmitted diseases (STDs). This territorial conquest policy had harrowing consequences for the women coerced into sex work. In the occupied territories, women were forced into sexual slavery to serve in military brothels, which were labeled as “treatment centers.” The Nazi regime considered these women racially inferior, but still okay for fucking purposes, expl oiting them to further Nazi ideological goals. A prisoner-of-war manual issued by the OKW in 1940 expl icitly condomed rape and sexual violence against civilian women in the occupied territories. The Rome Statute outlines that sexual enslavement is a punishable offense and that the use of civilian women for sexual purposes, while fun, is not quite okay. The Nazi actions clearly violate modern international law and standards. In the post-war period prostitutes in Nazi Germany were seen by society not as victims but as collaborators who deserved punishment.
ellauri406.html on line 219: The mellification process would ideally start before death. The donor would stop eating any food other than honey, going as far as to bathe in the substance. Shortly, the donor's feces and even sweat would consist of honey. When this diet finally proved fatal, the donor's body would be pl aced in a stone coffin filled with honey.
ellauri406.html on line 225: Sedan kriget i Gaza bröt ut i och med Hamas terrorattack den 7 oktober har Israel och Hizbollah angripit varandra på daglig basis. Den spritt språngande galna Netanyahu säger kriget slutar inte förrän alla Israelis mål är sönderskjutna. Utspelet om ett vidgat mål för kriget kommer inför den amerikanske utrikesministerns pl anerade besök i Kairo.
ellauri406.html on line 228: Minst 20 personer har dödats och över 450 personer skadats i en andra våg av expl osioner i Libanon, uppger landets hälsodepartement.
ellauri406.html on line 232: – Och det är precis vad vi kommer att göra, säger han, utan att nämna expl osionerna i Libanon, enligt The Times of Israel. It's hard times ahead for Israel.
ellauri406.html on line 234: ploads/data/upl oads/iblock/articles/61046/79/original.jpg" />
ellauri406.html on line 238: ploads/2022/01/AP22001619199403-640x400.jpg" />
ellauri406.html on line 244: Remember what Volodimyr Zelensky, a native Russian speaker, declared in a television appearance in 2014: “In the east and in Crimea, peopl e want to speak Russian. Leave them alone, just leave them alone. Give them the right to speak Russian. Language should never divide our country…. We have the same skin color, the same blood, regardless of language.” BUAHAHA LOL.
ellauri406.html on line 246: Twenty years ago, a mob of radical nationalists attacked Russian-speaking peopl e in Odessa. Dozens of peopl e were killed in a building that the russophobic Banderites had attacked and set on fire. After the crime, Prime Minister Yatsenuk (“Yats”), who was de facto appointed by Victoria “Fuck the EU” Nuland, the US government’s string-puller in the Maidan coup, visited the crime scene and showed his true colors. If he had been the prime minister for all the peopl e, he would have shown compassion for the victims, condemned the murderers and vowed to bring them to justice. Instead, he excused the crime by spreading an unfounded conspiracy theory against Russia and taking a hostile stance by portraying the case as part of the war against Russia.
ellauri406.html on line 248: The violent Maidan coup in 2014 against the democratically elected (and seen by Washington as pro-Russian) government marked the beginning of the cultural genocide, with the construction of multipl e monuments honoring Nazi perpetrators. At the same time, monuments in honor of greats of world literature such as Alexander Pushkin, Leo Tolstoy and Fyodor Dostoyevsky were torn down: Alexander Pushkin, born in 1799, was a world-famous pl aywright and novelist; Fyodor Dostoyevsky, born in 1821, expressed religious, psychological and philosophical ideas in his widely acclaimed writings; and Leo Tolstoy, born in 1828, is considered one of the greatest writers of all time and was nominated several times for the Nobel Prize for Literature.
ellauri406.html on line 254: The European Union and the United States have provided most of the funding for this demolition and renaming frenzy, including, for exampl e, the many new memorial pl aques throughout the country to Taras Bulba-Borovets, the Nazi-appointed leader of a militia that carried out numerous pogroms and murdered many Jews. Monuments were also erected in honor of Symon Petliura, who was at the head of the Ukrainian Peopl e’s Republic when 35,000 to 50,000 Jews were killed in a series of pogroms between 1918 and 1921.
ellauri406.html on line 261: The refusal of Verkhovna Rada deputy from Zelenky’s “Servants of the Peopl e” party, Maksim Buzhansky, to switch to Ukrainian on TV triggered a political and media scandal in Kiev. Even worse, he refused to give the appropriate obligatory greeting response to the greeting “Glory to the (fascist) heroes!” of the TV presenter. (It is: Yes... glory to Ukraine!)
ellauri406.html on line 263: The secretary of the National Security and Defense Council (NSDC), Alexei Danilov, responded by stressing that such peopl e had no pl ace in the country and promised a “purge.” He stated: “The not-yet-discharged <…> who think they have the right to speak Russian on Ukrainian television have no pl ace not only on television but also in politics and in Ukraine,” and he expressed his determination to have such peopl e “purged to the root and kicked out of everything.”
ellauri406.html on line 293: ploads/photobank/224000_225000/224557_Ben_Hodzhes_daily.rbc.ua._new_300x170_0.webp" />
ellauri406.html on line 294: "The liberation of Kherson may take pl ace in October" - General Ben Hodges
ellauri406.html on line 307: "Firstly, it is clear that the Kremlin is aware that it is losing the war on the battlefield. Their forces are unsuccessful and they face defeat on the battlefield. The scenario of using massive missile strikes is aimed at breaking the will of the Ukrainian peopl e. But that will never happen. Continue the conflict until the West weakens? That will never happen either. So another direction of the Kremlin's efforts is the continuation of typical Russian tactics - the killing of innocent peopl e."
ellauri406.html on line 313: "I am sure that the Ukrainian General Staff will continue to put pressure on the Russian troops and will not give them the opportunity to get on their feet, regroup or learn something. The Ukrainian troops have their peopl e behind them, and the Russians, especially the newly arrived ones, who are insufficiently equipped, unprepared and untrained, will be forced to resist the strong attacks of the Ukrainian troops. My opinion is that the Ukrainian troops will continue to press, will continue to achieve success, This is a good exampl e of the Ukrainian General Staff's professionalism, methodicality, and patience. I don't know how long it will take, I don't know the time frame, but I think we will see it in the next few weeks. I think they will continue with one type of brutal tactic or another. The sooner they are defeated, the better."
ellauri406.html on line 317: "Although the war is much the same as you could say Second World War and First World War, the tools that peopl e are using now, like the drones, like the electronic warfare, are changing how we do war, how we actually fight the war. The war itself doesn't change. Peopl e are still dying, and they always will do, and there will always be bloody contact between man and man, and that's the main thing. "
ellauri406.html on line 319: "But the overall shape of how war is going to be fought is under change. Oh dear, we need to change how we're thinking,” I mean, if history tells us anything from the last two years, they are not going to get all the things we promised. Ukraine will not get all the equipment it wants. Now for me, the big problem is the frontline. It's the frontline where we're ( - did I say "we"? I meant them, the malorussians) losing peopl e, and it's the frontline where we're going backwards. They're going to need new boots, they're going to need food. And rolls and rolls and rolls of toilet paper. Truckloads of paper for everything that’s lost, officers on the front line who should be spending their time with their soldiers fighting when in fact they're spending their time bringing them toilet paper. Because this war will be lost not in the sea, not at the back. It will be lost on the front line by shit and butts flying, soldiers dying and we run out of them. We simpl y can't deal with the mass of soldiers coming towards us from somewhere howling 'Uraa'.
ellauri406.html on line 323: Mr. Koppava, I think it is just war as usual. Commanders come and go, as the fortunes of war. Ukraine’s population will go through additional suffering. I went into one bar in Kyiv, and the main waiter stood in front of everybody and said, we're on small power. You can't have French fries, but everybody can have a hot dog. Everybody laughed. Ukrainians are not going to be beaten by something as small as small power, whether it's headlamps, whether it's candles, or whatever. Peopl e are not going- I did not see anybody compl aining in a really bad way about this. Ukrainian personality is a strong one. And bad times did not defeat Britain in the Second World War, and I do not see that bad times are going to defeat or change anything in Ukraine either. Stiff upper lip and all that, you know. You may hear something different in Lviv, but that's what I've heard in Kyiv.
ellauri406.html on line 331: A propos, on the evening of Sunday, September 22, President of Ukraine Volodymyr Zelenskyy arrived in the United States for a working visit, where he has already met with several American officials and got promises for more 155 mm artillery rounds. Earlier, it was announced that Volodymyr Zelenskyy pl ans to present the Victory Plan to Joe Biden in the United States, as well as meet with Kamala Harris and Donald Trump. Best to cover all the bases.
ellauri406.html on line 340: The most important thing at this point in the war is not to give Putin what he wants. When Russia finally collapses, how many generations to will it take to re-educate them? Would 30 years do it? And should we repl ace Russian with the English language? Surely more efficient.
ellauri406.html on line 344: Ruotsalaiset kauppalaivat kävivät aktiivista kauppaa seksiorjilla Välimerellä 1700-luvulla. Afrikasta kuljetettujen orjien joukossa oli naisia, joiden on arveltu joutuneen seksiorjiksi Istanbuliin silloiseen osmanien valtakuntaan, kirjoittaa Dagens Nyheter -sanomalehti. Why do Finnish peopl e consider themselves European when their culture and language are not European? Who gave them the permission to call themselves European?
ellauri406.html on line 348: Stödet till Ukraina spl ittrar USA och presidentkandidaterna. En lovar krigsslut på ett dygn, de andra låter Ukraina helt äga frågan. Demokraterna sätter USA:s globala roll som ledande demokratiskt supermakt på spel. Medan enbart 36 procent av republikanerna anser att USA har en skyldighet att hjälpa Ukraina står hela 63 procent av demokraterna bakom landets stöd, enligt opinionsinstitutet Pew.
ellauri406.html on line 350: Under dagen ska Volodymyr Zelenskyj presentera sin segerpl an för president Joe Biden. Men amerikanska källor uppger för flera medier att de betraktar pl anen som gammal skåpmat. Ukraina har bekräftat att pl anen innefattar en inbjudan till Nato. Mycket tyder på att ytterligare militärt stöd, lättade restriktioner för användningen av långdistansvapen från väst samt finansiellt stöd också ingår. Men anonyma amerikanska tjänstemän säger sig inte vara imponerade. Planen beskrivs som Ukrainas tidigare uttryckta önskemål i en ny förpackning och anses, av källorna, sakna en övergripande strategi.
ellauri406.html on line 352: Samtidigt har relationen med Trump till synes försämrats. Innan resan var pl anen att Zelenskyj, förutom att träffa president Joe Biden, även skulle möta presidentkandidaterna Kamala Harris och Donald Trump. Detta för att säkra USA:s stöd även efter en eventuell republikansk seger i valet. Men något möte står inte på Trumps schema, uppger källor för flera amerikanska medier. Han har under Zelenskyjs USA-besök beskrivit den ukrainske presidenten som en ”försäljare” och kritiserat honom för vad Trump menar är en ovilja att ingå i ett avtal med Ryssland.
ellauri406.html on line 356: NOT the pl an
ellauri406.html on line 362: Meanwhile, outnumbered Ukrainian forces face grinding battles against one of the world’s most powerful armies in the east. As Zelenskyy pitches his pl an to Biden on Thursday, Ukrainian servicemen will be grappl ing to hold defensive lines in the key logistics point of Vuhledar in the Donetsk region. For some of them, it is essential that Biden buys into Zelenskyy’s pl an. - Who shall I introduce next? President Putin? WHAT?
ellauri406.html on line 364: The victory pl an is Kyiv’s response to rising pressure from Western allies and war-weary Ukrainians to negotiate a cease-fire. A deal with Russia would almost certainly be unfavorable for Ukraine, which has lost a fifth of its territory and tens of thousands of lives in the conflict.
ellauri406.html on line 366: The political element of the pl an deals with how to assure the Ukrainian peopl e that they will be welcome in Western institutions like the European Union and NATO if they continue to fight with Russia or succeed in getting a negotiated settlement with Russia, the official said. A request to ramp up sanctions to weaken Russia’s economy and defense industry is also expected.
ellauri406.html on line 368: Zelenskyy has described his proposal as “a bridge to the Peace Summit” that he has proposed for November but that Russia says it will not attend. No international pl ayers capable of swaying Moscow agreed to his earlier 10-point peace pl an, which calls for the full withdrawal of Russian forces. Ukrainian presidential advisors and lawmakers have told The Associated Press that Kyiv will only agree to a cease-fire with Russia if Putin’s ability to invade the country again is crippl ed. Any other arrangement would not benefit Ukraine’s future or honor the sacrifices of its peopl e.
ellauri406.html on line 378: ploads.aa.com.tr/upl oads/Contents/2024/09/27/thumbs_b_c_1f345fa9f8e41a0c6cfc9b645ea6aa65.jpg?v=012539" />
ellauri406.html on line 379: Zelenskyj avslöjade segerpl anen. Bad om en enda sak: Apuuva! Kenraali Kaluuna ja vänr. Nappula.
ellauri406.html on line 396: He expressed concern that Europe contributes only a small fraction of the financial support the United States provides, emphasizing the geographical distance between the US and Russia. His pl anned meeting with Zelenskyy follows the Ukrainian president's criticism of Vance, whom he labeled "too radical," while also suggesting that Trump may lack a clear strategy to end the conflict.
ellauri406.html on line 426: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2a/%D0%A8%D0%B0%D1%85%D1%82%D0%B0_%D0%AE%D0%B6%D0%BD%D0%BE_%D0%94%D0%BE%D0%BD%D0%B1%D0%B0%D1%81%D1%81%D0%BA%D0%B0%D1%8F_%E2%84%961.jpg/800px-%D0%A8%D0%B0%D1%85%D1%82%D0%B0_%D0%AE%D0%B6%D0%BD%D0%BE_%D0%94%D0%BE%D0%BD%D0%B1%D0%B0%D1%81%D1%81%D0%BA%D0%B0%D1%8F_%E2%84%961.jpg" />
ellauri406.html on line 451: The law — which was watered down from its original draft — will make it easier to identify every draft-eligible man in the country, where many have dodged conscription by avoiding contact with authorities. Under the law, men aged 18 to 60 will be required to carry documents showing they have registered with the military and present them when asked, according to Oksana Zabolotna, a bitch for the watchdog group Center for United States Actions. Also, any man who appl ies for a state service at a consulate abroad will be registered for military service. This should generate significant savings in consulate expenditure.
ellauri408.html on line 37: TUPEK= SIJAN PÄIVÄKIRJA play:none">Väpelöintiä
ellauri408.html on line 109: Hylvään katumusta ja sen surullista kimeeriä, Jos neitsyt on jättänyt äitinsä sängyn, Nämä luonnolliset soihdut syttyvät hänen jalkojensa alla, Ja hänen huulensa muuttuu ja tulee lähelle rantaa etsimään kuin kuppi syvää kuorta. Vesi huokaa ja alkaa kupl ia, ja ennen paljaita askelmia heittää Venuksen kotiloisen hiekkarannoille. Henget saavat hänet näkemään upeita asioita ruusujen tuoksun täyttämien lehtojen alla: Hän näkee ruohikolla, minne heidän kätensä johdattaa nämä kumisukat, joiden kauneus avautuu vasta yöllä. Tuulet viereisiltä niityiltä tuovat pepunhajua rakastajan valitsemaan metsäkerrokseen. Herätetty lintu laulaa ja kahisee labioiden alla. Yökyhky hilseilee. Kurnu loikkaa. Tahmea kieli singahtaa ulos ja tarttuu kärpäseen.
ellauri408.html on line 122: Hän mietiskelee jo iskurepl iikkejä, joita hän aikoo antaa. Mutta miten olis vielä yxi varvi läxiäisixi? Eloaan tulee eloa, hiän tulee melkein heti ja itkee; he puhuvat keskenään näin: Valitettavasti! sano, pitäisikö meidän sittenkin naida vielä kerran? — Kyllä, tule päälleni, koska en voi kiivetä ylös. Et ole vielä ymmärtänyt rintojen yhteen puristamisen viehätystä kyrvän kyyneleiden piilottamiseksi. – Rakastan sinua ja tulen päällesi. Mutta mitä taivaat sanovat? — Veikkaan et Hyi häpeä! – Näytit niin hyvältä! Voi! mitä olen tehnyt? — Rikoxen. – Tulitko onnellisemmaksi ainakin, oletko onnellinen? – Surullisempi kuin koskaan. — Kuka sinä sitten olet? Saatana. — Voi saatana, mitä helvettiä, olisit heti sanonut. Mä en ala.»
ellauri408.html on line 198: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/69/WikipediaNancy20060611-cropped.png" />
ellauri408.html on line 210: This week I have mostly eaten acorns. Unelias unexii David Copperfieldin Agnexesta, joka seuraa uskollisesti Davidin joka oikkua ja pääse lopulta palkinnoxi sen kanssa mimmoisiin. While living in Switzerland, David realizes that he loves Agnes. After returning to England he tries hard to conceal his feelings, but realizing Agnes loves him as well, he proposes to her; she accepts. They marry quickly and take residence in London. Agnes bears David at least five children. Like typical Dickensian heroines, Agnes is mainly a passive character, an ideal Victorian lady. Her characterization is often criticized as "too perfect". David often describes her as an angel. She shows the effects of parentification. David often compares Agnes with a church-window. Kuin heiluttaisi patonkia porttikonkissa. Her character was based on Dickens' sisters-in-law Mary and Georgina Hogarth, both of whom were very close to Dickens. Mary died in 1837 at the age of 17, and Georgina, from 1842, lived with the Dickens family. Dickens referred to her affectionately as his "little housekeeper". After Dickens' separation from his wife Catherine, Georgina stayed with him for the rest of his life and took compl ete responsibility for managing his household. Pukille pääsi takuulla muttei mimmoisiin. Jean Paul ja Emerson Fittipaldi on sen sanoneet: Suuri kirjailija on se joka osaa tehostaa izeänsä. No noi ei kai sitten osanneet. Yxin jumalaa on mahdoton pitää naurettavana, vai onko? onhan siinä paljon Niilo Visapään piirteitä. Minä tunsin maan uivan aluxena avaruuden sinistä valtamerta. Minä purjehdin keltaisella merellä. Onnettomuutesi, vanha veikko, on että olet akkamainen.
ellauri408.html on line 214: Siemenexi palaamisen ilmiön tuntevat druidit ja bramiinit, uuspl atonistit ja elefantit. Uneliaalla on siemen valunut useasti housuihin. Oletko keltti ja ojennat suolaa? Eise minua galloon ota.
ellauri408.html on line 217: Mitä itua on elää, miettii Unelias puhalleltuaan koko päivän saippuakupl ia. No se on jumalan tahto. Turtumuxen unteloittava vaikutus. Minkä tähden aina vaan jaarittelua ja lauseparsia, valittelua ja haukottelua, mutta ei milloinkaan toimintaa? Tis-mal-leen! Vitun Oblomov. On päästy vasta sivulle 68/372, Harry on 37-vuotias ja yhä virgin. Edellinen lukija on nähtävästi luovuttanut jossain s. 170 kohdalla, loppuja sivuja ei ole leikattu.
ellauri408.html on line 225: Toisinaan sielun kyllyys saa haaveen pikkarin valumaan yli reunojen. Kuin lymfa joka äänettömästi tihkuu pimeän komeron holvista. Kaikki nämä elimen salaperäiset liikahduxet päätyvät heltymiseen, ja heltyminen kiintyy limapisaraxi ripsipiirakan vaiheille. Kiiihkeä rakkaus voi toisinaan ilmetä imutuxen aikana vain puremisen avulla. Olematta nainenkin voi tuntea samanlaista kaipausta. Mutta kuinka paljoa nopeampi, tehokkaampi ja suloisempi on lohdutus jos ihminen antautuu tähän heikkouteen. Jälkeenpäin on ihanan helpottunut olo, vaikka vähän apea. Sateenkaaren värinen kupl a ozassa muuttuu pienexi likaisexi nestepisaraxi.
ellauri408.html on line 233: Länsimaat pitää arvossa edestakaista liikettä, itämaat liikkumattomuutta. Meidän onnemme on pinnallista. Tässä tulee apuun kristillisyys, kulttuurimme itämainen aines. Se pl otinoi jossain määrin kiintymyxiämme. Pyhistelyssä piilee puhdistava voima. Andy oikein räjäyttää lian pois. Uskonnollinen tunne kiertää ozalle sädekehän ja saa sydämen avartumaan sanomattomasta riemusta. Kypsymätön kehitysoppi on hylättävä. (V. 1866, malexija on 44, Lajien synty ilmestyi 1859.)
ellauri408.html on line 237: Me kaipaamme aina ääretöntä, iäistä, absoluuttista, ja relatiiviseen tyytyvä tiede jättää tyhjyyden, jota on hyvä täyttää mindfulnessillä, mietiskelyllä, hartaudella ja palvonnalla. Uskonto, sanoi Bacon, on mauste, jonka tulee suojella pekonia ja pakastekanaa pilaantumasta, ja siihen tarkoitukseen kaivataan varsinkin nykyään uskontoa pl atonisessa ja itämaisessa merkityksessään. Syvä keskittyminen on todellisuudessa kauniin toiminnan edellytys. Keskitysleirejä tarvitaan. Palaaminen vakavuuteen, jumalalliseen, pyhään, on yhä vaikeampi nyt, kun kriitillinen levottomuus on päässyt itse kirkonkin alueelle, saarnaaminen muuttunut maailmalliseksi ja yllytys yleiseksi, mutta sellainen palaaminen on yhä välttämättömämpi. Ilman sitä ei ole olemassa minkäänlaista sisäistä elämää. Ilman uusia muotoja ei ole koko taidetta. Ja sisäinen elämä on keino, jonka avulla voi tehokkaasti vastustaa ympäristöänsä. Seilorikaan ei pysy lämpimänä ilman nuttua ja malspiikkiryyppiä. Housuja se ei välttämättä tarvize, mutta lakki pitää olla. Perään perinteistä oikeistoindividualismia ja massojen halveeraamista. Vizi kylläpä on epäoriginellia. Tällä kaverilla piisaa kyllä sanoja mutta ne on kaikki niitä samoja. Ihminen joka ei puhalla saippuakupl ia on kuin hamsteri, hälläpyörä, suhdannebarometri.
ellauri408.html on line 269: Jesus was a Jew: why do you think He was not? Jeshua Ben Joseph, as he was known by other Jews at the time, followed the Law of Moses, was circumcised, studied the Jewish Scriptures and attended Templ e. He became a Bar Mitzvah at 13 years old, but waited until he was 30 before He began his mission: that is because Jewish men become Elders at the age of 30 and are allowed to speak in the Templ e or Synegogue. His life was ruled by the Law, and he abided by every one of the laws (except filching corn and screwing discipl es), showing it was possible to live in accordance with the old Covenant, if you were without sin and perfect. The new Covenant is based on Faith in Jesus, and accepts you as a sinner because His Passion on the Cross paid the price for that sin: the New Covenant was necessary because no-one other than Christ is capable of living without sin. Those who follow Christ are called Christians, but Christ didn’t follow himself, obviously, he followed YHWH, God the Father, so he was a Jew. So there!
ellauri408.html on line 276: The Bible is full of false prophecies that can never be fulfilled. As I will expl ain immediately after this intro, a biblical prophet, Ezekiel, even admitted a failed prophecy, then immediately issued another prophecy, which also failed miserably!
ellauri408.html on line 277: So much for the Bible being “inerrant” and “infallible.” As we will see, the book of Acts turned the Angels into false prophets, with a cartoonish prophecy. As we also will see, Jehovah’s first prophecy, in the opening chapters of Genesis, proved to be false. The Bible even turned Jesus into a false prophet, multipl e times, when devious authors of the New Testament put false and foolish words in his mouth. Here’s a quick exampl e with more to follow:
ellauri408.html on line 281: Jesus made similar claims to his discipl es according to the authors of Matthew and Mark:
ellauri408.html on line 289: “Truly, I say to you, this generation will not pass away until all these things take pl ace.” (Mark 13:30)
ellauri408.html on line 291: “These things” that Jesus prophesied would happen before his discipl es’ generation died included: the sun being darkened, the moon not giving off light, stars falling from the heavens, and Jesus coming “in the clouds” and sending his angels to the four corners of the earth to gather the elect. Obviously nothing like what Jesus described has happened. And two thousand years later, no one has seen Jesus do what the Messiah was predicted to do, which including creating world peace and universal worship of the biblical god. Jesus has not returned in glory with the angels, nor has he rewarded every man according to his works. Every one of Jesus’s discipl es tasted death long ago. These are compl etely failed prophecies, on every count.
ellauri408.html on line 308: First the false prophet said Nebuchadnezzar would sack and destroy Tyre, and that it would never be rebuilt: “I will make you a bare rock, and you will become a pl ace to spread fishnets. You will never be rebuilt, for I the Lord have spoken, declares the Sovereign Lord. (Ezekiel 26:14)
ellauri408.html on line 311: The Bible says the evangelist Paul also visited Tyre, where he met with his discipl es and stayed with them for seven days. (Acts 21: 3-6) As a matter of fact, Tyre exists to this day.
ellauri408.html on line 315: “Son of man, Nebuchadnezzar king of Babylon drove his army in a hard campaign against Tyre; every head was rubbed bare and every shoulder made raw. Yet he and his army got no reward from the campaign he led against Tyre. Therefore this is what the Sovereign Lord says: ‘I am going to give Egypt to Nebuchadnezzar king of Babylon, and he will carry off its wealth. He will loot and pl under the land as pay for his army. I have given him Egypt as a reward for his efforts because he and his army did it for me,’ declares the Sovereign Lord. On that day I will make a horn grow for the Israelites, and I will open your mouth among them. Then they will know that I am the Lord.”
ellauri408.html on line 329: The most glaring archeological error in the Bible makes Jesus a false prophet. According to Mark 13:1-2, Jesus prophesied that not one stone of the Jerusalem templ e buildings would be left standing on another stone. This false prophecy was surely added by a charlatan writing in Greece or Rome sometime after 70 AD, who had never been to Jerusalem. While the Romans largely destroyed Jerusalem in 70 AD, making this not a prophecy but chicanery, the Romans did not compl etely level the templ e. To this day the Wailing Wall still stands. And some of the templ e’s great foundation stones are still standing firmly on top of each other. I have seen them in an episode of the Naked Archaeologist and you can see them in the image above. The largest stones are Herodian, laid by Herod the Great, who according to the Gospel of Matthew attempted to murder Jesus after his birth in the infamous Massacre of the Innocents. But as we will see that account was also false, as is so much of the Bible.
ellauri408.html on line 331: Here is what Jesus allegedly told his discipl es after one of them praised the templ e compound:
ellauri408.html on line 335: However, you can see above that many of the templ e’s stones remain standing, including the great foundation stone known as the Western Stone, which dwarfs the pictured guide and remains one of the biggest building blocks in the world!
ellauri408.html on line 336: Please note that in the doctored “prophecy” the pl ural term “buildings” was used, so Jesus was talking about the templ e compound, not just a single building. In the artist’s rendition below, we can see why Jesus was talking about buildings rather than just one building. It was the templ e compl ex that was so impressive, not a single building.
ellauri408.html on line 346: It was like a father pl acing poisoned milk before two babies and saying “Don’t drink the milk or you will surely die!” Of course the babies, not knowing any better, are going to drink the milk. Who is at fault for the babies’ deaths? Of course the fault lies compl etely with the evil father, as it does with the evil Jehovah.
ellauri408.html on line 351:
(PST, a word: evil for whom? Theology teaches good is whatever pl eases Cod, so he can never do anything evil except by accident, and accidents don't happen because he is infallible! So there! Hyvä jumala ei tahdo, että ihminen on onnellinen. Kärsimyxen uskonto on toivon uskonto. Hauska alkaa vasta kiven tuolla puolen. Tomismikin on parempi kuin moraalinen atomismi. Deka atoma, sanoi Ateenassa Omena.)
ellauri408.html on line 353: And quite obviously nudists should be immortal because they don’t know that it’s a “sin” to be naked when other peopl e can see them!
ellauri408.html on line 371: Levite priests would always offer sacrifices to God in the Jerusalem templ e, which was destroyed twice and no longer exists except for a few standing stones here and there.
ellauri408.html on line 377: Jesus Christ saved all his sternest criticism for religious hypocrites, informing us that a perfect God cannot be a hypocrite if Jesus revealed his character, and yet there has never been a greater hypocrite than Jehovah, if he considers abortion a “sin” and yet has aborted untold millions of babies during the Great Flood and afterwards, since nature is by far the greatest abortionist pl anet Earth has ever seen. According to the University of California San Francisco Medical Center website: “In nature, 50 percent of all fertilized eggs are lost before a woman's missed menses.” Thus, if an all-powerful God controls nature, he aborts 50% of all human pregnancies in the first few weeks!
ellauri408.html on line 382: Speaking of hypocrisy, it’s ironic that the Christian religion turned Jesus, who saved all his sternest criticism for religious hypocrites, into the greatest HYPOCRITE of them all! The Good Samaritan was a man who put aside religious differences to help a man of another faith who was unable to help himself. But Jesus, who was able to save the thief on the cross with a mere nod of his head, will hypocritically not deign to nod his head at billions of peopl e who are unable to save themselves, according to Christians who blaspheme Jesus’s name from sunup to sundown. What will Jesus say when they have to stand before him on the Day of Judgment and expl ain why they accused him of such evil?
ellauri408.html on line 392: Think about it for a second. If all human beings fall short of the glory of God, as the Bible claims, then all human fall infinitely short and there is no difference between one fallible human being and another. If there is a heaven, to keep if from being like earth, God would either have to change human nature, or he would have to create a dimension where suffering and death are not possible. If suffering and death are not possible, evil is not possible. But a God who can do either, and who is able to “make the lion lie down with the lamb” doesn’t need a “hell.” Does this expl ain why there was no “hell” in the Old Testament?
ellauri408.html on line 394: Furthermore, the New Testament offers no expl anation for “hell” popping up in a few inexpl icable verses, like the weasel in the silly song. If God decided to create “hell” it would have been incumbent on him to inform every human being on earth, immediately. But of course that never happened, and the creation of hell and its purpose was never once mentioned in the Bible, not even in the New Testament. Thus, obviously, human beings made it up. (See Peter's and Paul's revelations elsewhere in these blasphemies.)
ellauri408.html on line 396: We can see human beings pretending to speak for “god” in the tower of Babel fairy tale (Genesis 11:1-9). Ancient bricklayers were building a tower to reach the heavens and “god” was afraid they would succeed. The ancients had no idea that their tower would have to be nearly a quarter of a million miles high just to reach a sterile moon, much less the closest inhabitable pl anet, if there is one. Nor apparently did their “god” know there was absolutely no danger of success. How silly of an all-knowing “god” to worry about primitive bricklayers reaching his domicile!
ellauri408.html on line 408: What about the most important Christian teaching: How is one saved? Paul insisted that salvation was by grace, through faith, “not of works lest any man should boast.” James and his discipl es insisted that works were required for salvation.
ellauri408.html on line 426: All that spectacular nonsense was followed by Peter healing every sick person in Jerusalem and all the surrounding cities with his shadow, and yet no one breathed a single word of it, not even the famous Jewish historian Flavius Josephus, who grew up in Jerusalem while these alleged “miracles” were taking pl ace! Why did Josephus go on and on about much lesser figures when the greatest miracle worker of all time lived just down the street from him?
ellauri408.html on line 445: Please do give us your “spiritual” interpretation of satanic commandments to stone girls to death for being raped (Deuteronomy 22:23-24) and for fathers to sell their daughters as sex slaves with an option to buy them back if they don’t “pl ease” their new masters (Exodus 21:7-11). Did the Holy Spirit inspire these satanic commandments? As a member of the Trinity, did Jesus approve them? He must have, since they ended up in the Bible … unless the Bible was written by evil-minded men. As it so obviously was.
ellauri408.html on line 447: There is no “spiritual” or enlightened way to read such evil bible passages. The only thing Christians can do is compl ain bitterly when they are pointed out, attacking the messenger rather than being honest about what the Bible clearly says. 117.3K views on 9–9–2024, 96.8K views on 8–7–2024, 86.8K views on 7–19–2024. 129.6K views total. View 713 upvotes. View 43 shares View 1 of 60 answers.
ellauri408.html on line 467: Ce matin, j'ai lu une partie des Romans de Voltaire, lecture détestable, si on la juge d'après la méthode conseillée par un sage, car cette lecture ne pousse qu'à l'immoralité. Rire de singe assis sur la destruction, a dit, du rire de Voltaire, un poète de nos jours. On ne sort de ce livre que méchant, impur, ricaneur, aride et irréligieux. Comme Rousseau et sa Julie grandissent sur ces sépulcres vides et putréfiés de Voltaire! comme on se prend à aimer le misanthrope en dépit de tous ses sophismes et de son impl acable orgueil, à le respecter pour sa chaleur morale, pour son énergie de haine et d'amour!
ellauri408.html on line 477: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/31/Auguste_Barbier.png/280px-Auguste_Barbier.png" />
ellauri408.html on line 489: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c0/Henri_Fr%C3%A9d%C3%A9ric_Amiel_jeune-01.jpg" height="400" />
ellauri408.html on line 490: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e5/Almqvist_1843.jpg" height="400" />
ellauri408.html on line 496: Die Familie Amiel stammte ursprünglich aus Frankreich und war seit 1791 in Genf heimatberechtigt. Harryn porukat olivat hottentotteja, jotka pakenivat Sveitsiin Nantesin ediktin kumoamisen jälkeen. Deux tragédies familiales marquent son enfance : la mort de sa mère (d'une tuberculose), alors qu'il n'a que onze ans, et, moins de deux ans pl us tard, le suicide de son père, qui se jette dans le Rhône. Henri-Frédéric, alors âgé de 13 ans, et ses deux sœurs cadettes, Fanny et Laure, sont recueillis par leur oncle Frédéric Amiel et leur tante Fanchette, déjà parents de onze enfants. Ce séjour dure sept ans.
ellauri408.html on line 500: De 1854 jusqu'à sa mort, il conserve sa chaire de philosophie et son table pl ein des taches et des livres de pornographie.
ellauri408.html on line 525: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e5/Victor_Cherbuliez_by_Nadar.png" width="90%" />
ellauri408.html on line 553: Han ansåg, att hans föräldrars olyckliga samliv var orsaken till hans egen disharmoni, den slitande dupl iciteten i hans eget väsen, och han talar om olyckan i att barn föds "utan andlig, verklig och hjärtlig kärlek mellan föräldrarna, hvarigenom de arma varelserna framkomma dåliga till själfva väsendets innehåll." "Man hänger vexelförfalskare, men den, som af tusen andra orsaker, men ej af kärlek, förenar sig med en person, den han icke älskar, och sålunda bildar en oduglig huslig krets, månne icke den begår ett brott, hvars egen storhet och hvars oberäkneliga följder öfver samtid och eftervärld sprida långt förfärligare olyckor än förfalskandet af millioner sedlar?", skriver Almqvist redan som ung.
ellauri408.html on line 610: Le Roman de la Rose fut un énorme succès littéraire dès sa parution et jusqu´à la Renaissance. On en a retrouvé en effet environ une centaine de manuscrits en France, souvent somptueusement illustrés, et quelque 300 exempl aires historiques (manuscrits et incunables) seraient connus.
ellauri408.html on line 654: ploads/2013/12/Goethe_and_Charlotte_von_Stein_in_conversation_watercolour_late_18th_century3.jpg" />
ellauri408.html on line 662: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/40/Charlotte_von_Stein_2.jpg/848px-Charlotte_von_Stein_2.jpg" height="500px" />
ellauri408.html on line 663: ploads/2024/01/Image20240124122747_1-1846x2048.jpeg" height="500px" />
ellauri408.html on line 686: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ef/Portrait_Pierre-Joseph_Proudhon_%28cropped%29.jpg/520px-Portrait_Pierre-Joseph_Proudhon_%28cropped%29.jpg" />
ellauri408.html on line 691: « S’il est un être qui, avant nous et pl us que nous, ait mérité l’enfer, il faut bien que je le nomme : c’est Dieu »
ellauri408.html on line 702: Au cours des voyages qu'il fait à Paris, Proudhon rencontre Karl Grün, Mikhaïl Bakounine, Alexandre Herzen qui deviendront ses amis et Karl Rot qui admirait en lui le seul socialiste français dégagé du mysticisme chrétien. En pl us, il est lui-même prolétaire, ouvrier! Et il précise : « nous ne devons pas poser l'action révolutionnaire comme moyen de réforme sociale, parce que ce prétendu moyen serait tout simpl ement un appel à la force, à l'arbitraire, bref, une contradiction. L'échange de lettres avec Marx annonce la rupture, qui intervient quelques mois pl us tard. Quand, en octobre 1846, Proudhon publie le Système des contradictions économiques ou Philosophie de la misère , Marx riposte par Misère de la philosophie. Marx considère que Proudhon est un socialiste « petit-bourgeois » ou nettement « bourgeois », qui défend un système utopique qui combinerait les avantages du socialisme et du capitalisme sans leurs inconvénients. Il écrit ainsi : « Les socialistes bourgeois veulent tous les avantages des conditions sociales modernes sans les luttes et les dangers qui en découlent nécessairement ». Il critique notamment ses conceptions économiques sur la valeur, son soutien à la concurrence ou encore son opposition aux grèves ouvrières. Marx est le ténia du socialisme (sosialismin lapamato), Proudhomme sinkauttaa vastineexi ja kommentoi marginaaliin manifestia: « Calomnie », « Absurde », « Faux » « Mensonge », « Pasquinade ». « Quelle bêtise après ce que j´ai écrit — En vérité Marx est jaloux » ; « Allons mon cher Marx, vous êtes de mauvaise foi, et tout à la fois vous ne savez rien » .
ellauri408.html on line 724: Tämä viimeinen kysymys on se, jonka haluan käsitellä The Mutustelijan toisessa numerossa, sillä pyrin siihen mahdollisuuteen, että oikeuden, omaisuuden jne. keskinäisen kohtelun analyysin perusyksikkö ei voi olla kuin miespösilö, ja että kaikki Proudhonin, Pierre Leroux'n, Whitmanin, Dejacquen ja jopa Stirnerin kirjoituksissa nähtyjen itsensä ja ei-itsen välisen kuilun kompl ikaatiot vaativat hieman monimutkaisempaa analyysiä keskinäisyyden perusrakennuspalikoista ja -oletuksista. monimutkainen analyysi, johon emme ehkä pääse, jos yksinkertaisesti lopetamme, kun kohtaamme Proudhonin antifeministiset epäonnistumiset.
ellauri408.html on line 748: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d5/Heinrich_Pfenninger_Johann_Heinrich_Pestalozzi_dunkel.jpg/340px-Heinrich_Pfenninger_Johann_Heinrich_Pestalozzi_dunkel.jpg" />
ellauri408.html on line 898: Tämäkin tarina on surullinen. Se muistuttaa Pestalozzin hukattua elämää. Luin 408:nnen vihkon ennen kuin neuloin kokoon sen seuraajan. Päiväkirjastani tulisi painettuna 46 kpl 300s kokoista nidosta. Onnexi tämä 29 vuotta kestänyt jaarittelu painuu unohduxiin, sillä jokaista kiinnostaa vain oma romaani ja henkkoht elämä. Pyörähdetään kolmasti ja pyrähdetään pois. Saxalaisten karkea komiikka on sietämättömän alhaista. En ihmettelisi, vaikka heräisin kamelina. Izensäsukoileminen l. paapominen on kädetyxen rikoskumppanuutta. Olemme tuomitut typistyxeen.
ellauri408.html on line 916: Naisten tuttavallinen seura, pl atoninen ja pyhä suhde, josta olen saanut usein nauttia, on kuitenkin ollut aina kärsimyksen lähde toiselle osapuolelle, koska en ole koskaan antanut kuin vähän kädellä. On se vähän izeenikin sattunut. Mutta mitäpä siitä enää nyt.
ellauri408.html on line 929: mi pungon sí, che ’nfin qua il sento et pl oro, mua pistävät niin että sattuu ja tulee itku,
ellauri408.html on line 942: Sonnet 227 documents Petrarch´s slow realization that his love for Laura, 12, might be more painful than it is pl easant. The early sonnets praise her beauty and the importance of romance. Sonnet 227 compares Laura's gaze to being stung by the "wasps of love." Petrarch is still very much in love with Laura, but this love now arrives to him in the form of a painful sting. He is left stumbling around like an animal. He has lost all of his dignity. Petrarch's love for Laura is no longer the impassioned daydream that it once was.
ellauri408.html on line 949: Nostrum vatem patet nunquam ab ordine historico rerum abhorruisse, neque quidquam suo consilio ausum esse ; modo tamen quaedam fuse expl icavit. Unum sit exempl um. Haec tantum de Sophonisbae habitu Livius : « Forma erat insignis et florentissima stans. » Quae longius per triginta versus circumduxit Petrarcha.
ellauri408.html on line 953: Quaesitum est utrum Florentinus vates, quum carmen suum componeret, Punica Silii cognosceret necne ; quidam etiam contenderunt vatem nostrum clam domi Punicorum exempl ar tenuisse, perlectumque assidue, Africa persoluta, combussisse ne unquam fraus pateret ; productum est imo in lucem quidam Silii codex , Petrarchae notis distinctus.
ellauri408.html on line 974: Verumtamen bene est Africam, taedio pl enam licet et vitiis abundantem, ad nos pervenisse ; Petrarcham scilicet, nisi ingenio clariorem , saltem magis notum ostendit.
ellauri408.html on line 1041: Bob | abat-jour | abbaye de Cluny | arche | arrière-boutique | arrière-garde | arrière-train | arrondissement | artiche | auguste | au pet | baba | baba du pauvre | baigneur | ballon | banlieue | baril de moutarde | bas | bas des reins | base | bavard | beautés occidentales | beautés postérieures | bernard | bienséant | bol | bonda | bon endroit | borgne | bottom | boule | brioches | bronze | cadet | cadran | cadran humain | cadran lunaire | cadran solaire | canon | canonnière | cavu | centre | centre de gravité | chose | cible à coups de pied | cocotier | comète | contrebasse | coquillard | côté face | coufa | coup de pied dans les reins | croupe | croupière | croupion | cucu | cul | culasse | culot | cuvette | cyclope | dargeaf | dargeoskoff | dargeot | dargif | demi-lunes | département du bas-rein | der | derche | derge | derjo | derrière | deux citrouilles | deux melons | deux soeurs | discret | disque | dos | dossière | double-blanc | double-six | endroit où les grenouilles n'ont pas de queue | envers | épaules qui trottent | être renforcé sur la culasse | face du Grand Turc | faubourg | fiac | fiacre | fias | fignard | figne | fignoton | figue | figure | fion | firts | fla | flacdal | flaquet | foireux | foiron | foirpette | fondement | fouettard | fouigne | fouindé | garde-manger | giberne | giffaut | globes | gnarre | grosse caisse | gros visage | hémisphères | jacques | joues (les) | joufflu | jumelles | juste milieu | la partie la pl us exhubérante de ses attraits | le bas de l'épine dorsale | le bas Rhin | les deux frangines | lignefuche | lorgne | luc | lune | lunette de viande | machine à moulin | mappemonde | médaillon | meules | miches | molistrol | montre | mouilles (les -) | moule à merde | moulin à vents | moutardier | n'a-qu'un-oeil | naze | noix | obusier | oeuf | où je pense | où vous savez | pains au lait | panier | panier à crottes | panier fleuri | parfaitement | partie charnue | parties basses | pastèque | patelette | pendule | pétard | pète | péteux | petits pains | pétoulet | pétrousquin | pétrus | pignard | pl eine-lune | pommes | ponant | pont arrière | pont-arrière | popotas | popotin | postère | pot | pot à crottes | pot à moutarde | potard | pot-au-feu | potin | pouet | prose | proye | prozinard | prussien | quelque part | réchaud | reposoir | revers de la médaille | rondeurs | rose des vents | rotondités | sac à foire | salle de danse | seuff | sonore | soufflet | staphanari | taffanard | tal | tambour | tapanard | t'as donc faim, que tu frappes au garde-manger ? | tcho-tcho | Thomas | tirelire | tôle | train | trèfle | trompe | trompette musicale | trouffe | troufignon | troufion | trousse | troussequin | uc | ulc | valseur | vase | vénérable | verre de montre | vezouille | visage sans nez Tintin | châssis arrière | ci-devant | dualisme charnu | fessier | fiotas | fiotum | monument | tarma | tates.
ellauri409.html on line 38:
PETER ACKROYDIN LUONNEMURHA play:none">Elämäkerturointia
ellauri409.html on line 200: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/df/Augustin_gazier.png/440px-Augustin_gazier.png" />
ellauri409.html on line 207: Emme voi täysin ymmärtää mitään osia, niin hajanaisia kuin ne ovatkin, ilman jonkinlaista ymmärrystä kokonaisuudesta. Esimerkiksi pääoma on hänen analyysinsä kolmesta järjestyksestä : luonnon järjestyksestä, mielen järjestyksestä ja rakkauden järjestyksestä. Nämä kolme ovat epäjatkuvia ; korkeampi ei ole impl isiittisesti alemmassa, kuten evoluutio-opissa se olisi. Tässä erottelussa Pascal tarjoaa paljon sellaista, mitä nykymaailman olisi hyvä pohtia. Ja todellakin, hänen ainutlaatuisen yhdistelmänsä ja ominaisuuksiensa tasapainon vuoksi, en tiedä yhtään uskonnollista kirjailijaa, joka olisi osuvampi aikamme.
ellauri409.html on line 222: Pezku käy huolella läpi Tompan matkimat runosepot, kuten Kipl ing, skotti Davidson ja tötteröhattu Lefargue.
ellauri409.html on line 226: Tommy opetteli Kipl ingin Danny Deeverin ulkoa jo koulupoikana. Samanlainen kylmiö kuin äitinsä. On ilmeistä että Eliotit oli narsisseja koko porukka, alapartaisesta lähetyssaarnaajasta alkaen tupl atyrä Tomiin saakka. Tyra tyrä mörk mörk. Siihen se sarja taisi sitten päättyä, Tomilla ei ollut jälkeläisiä. Runo on balladi joka kuvaa brittisotilaan teloittamista Intiassa murhasta. Hänen rykmenttinsä katsoo hänen teloitustaan paraatimuodostelmassa, ja runo koostuu kommenteista, joita he vaihtavat nähdessään hänet hirtettynä. Runoilija TS Eliot kutsui runoa "teknisesti (samoin kuin sisällöltään) merkittäväksi" pitäen sitä yhtenä Kipl ingin parhaista balladeista. Hän sisällytti runon vuoden 1941 kokoelmaansa A Choice of Kipl ing´s Verse ja tarjosi runon analyysin johdannossa. Eliot kuvaili runon "raskasta rytmiä ja askelvaihdosta" sekä teknisesti että sisällöltään merkittäväksi. Hän päätteli, että Danny Deever oli "kasarmihuoneballadi, joka saavuttaa jotenkin runouden intensiivisyyden". Sekä Yeats että Eliot kirjoittivat pian Kipl ingin kuoleman jälkeen, vuosina 1936 ja 1941, jolloin kriittinen mielipide hänen runoistaan oli alhaalla; molemmat kuitenkin antoivat Danny Deeverille hommiota merkittävänä teoksena. Keskusteltuaan tästä matalasta kriittisestä mielipiteestä vuoden 1942 esseessä George Orwell kuvaili Danny Deeveria esimerkkinä Kipl ingistä "pahimmillaan ja myös hänen törkeimmillään... melkein häpeällisenä nautintona, kuten halpojen makeisten maku, joita jotkut ihmiset salaa popsivat keski-iässä". Hän koki työn olevan esimerkki siitä, mitä hän kuvaili "hyväksi huonoksi runoudeksi"; säe, joka on pohjimmiltaan mautonta, mutta kuitenkin kiistatta viettelevä ja "merkki älyllisen ja turveloisen ihmisen emotionaalisesta päällekkäisyydestä".
ellauri409.html on line 289: And I meet a sort of simpl eton beside, Ja mä näen siellä yhden tumpelon
ellauri409.html on line 339: It’s pl aying bowls upon a spl itting wreck; Se on keilausta uppoovan laivan kannella;
ellauri409.html on line 377: Car les seins distingués se font toujours pl us rares ; Hulppeat kannut ovat yhä harvinaisempia
ellauri409.html on line 402: Analysis (ai): This poem displ ays a cynical and pessimistic tone, expressing the speaker´s frustration with life in October. The poem´s themes are similar to those found in other works by the author, including the futility of life and the search for meaning in a meaningless world. However, the poem´s tone is more expl icitly angry and bitter than in other works. This may reflect the author´s own feelings of disillusionment and despair at the time he wrote the poem. Nice use of diction, though I thought the ´crooked old fart´ bit took me away from the depth of the work.
ellauri409.html on line 453: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/35/Gauguin_Il_Cristo_giallo.jpg/540px-Gauguin_Il_Cristo_giallo.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri409.html on line 463: The epigraph, in conjunction with the first line of the piece—“Let us go then, you and I” —and the repetition of second-person and collective first-person pronouns, impl icates the reader in an impl ied tour of Prufrock´s personal Hell, a state of imprisonment within his own consciousness.
ellauri409.html on line 466: Prufrock sums it up well: “It is impossible to say just what I mean!” Actually Eliot means that the pl ight of J. Alfred Prufrock and the pl ight of all humanity are parallel in their morbidity, futility, and failure. It is not just Prufrock who drowns; it is him and us.
ellauri409.html on line 469: ploads/5/5/2/3/5523249/6733900.jpg?278" />
ellauri409.html on line 516: For Montaigne, firstly, the religious tradition (at least in the institutional form handed down to us) is not necessarily a source of the truth in that even the writings of traditional authorities such as God or Jesus may not be relied on. This is because the meaning of a piece of writing is inherently arbitrary: "once you start digging down into a piece of writing there is simpl y no slant or meaning, straight, bitter, sweet or bent - which the human mind cannot find there".
ellauri409.html on line 727: Lähde: MN 148 (Thanissaro, 1998) pl ate:Chachakka" title="Templ ate:Chachakka">kaavion yxityiskohdat
ellauri411.html on line 39: Ulkopuolinen play:none">Elämänparturointia
ellauri411.html on line 44: ‘Katherine Mansfield had an insatiable desire for sex’. Newly released divorce papers filed by her first husband, the hapl ess George Bowden, claim the reason their marriage broke down was because of her “insatiable desire for sex”. The hapl ess Bowden first told Anthony Alpers for his seminal 1954 book Katherine Mansfield: A Biography that she was “frigid”, and refused to have sex with him on their wedding night.
ellauri411.html on line 48: He goes further, and impl ies her nymphomania was so avid that he spent all his time fucking, and couldn’t get any work done. He lost income, and had to flee England to find work. “I had no private means at this time and no income other than that derived from my occupation as a vocalist and teacher of singing and voice culture. My domestic troubles impaired my ability to make a living at my profession and in the hope of bettering my financial position in a community where I was a stranger I took the advice of friends and came to California arriving in San Francisco towards the end of 1912.”
ellauri411.html on line 54: Biographical investigation has the right to accumulate every single piece of knowledge. It adds to the portrait. As Claire Tomalin writes of Katherine Mansfield in 1909, a New Zealander abroad, just turned 20, her genius not yet realised, “It was an absolutely crucial time for her; without an understanding of what happened to her in 1909, the rest of her life simpl y does not make sense.” Vittu kenenkä elämä ylipäänsä "makes sense".
ellauri411.html on line 59: ploads/2024/06/kmWITH-jmm.webp?w=1080&ssl=1" width="100%" />
ellauri411.html on line 68: ploads/2016/01/Katherinemansfield_cropped.png" width="70%" />
ellauri411.html on line 80: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2e/ETH-Bibliothek_Z%C3%BCrich%2C_Bildarchiv_-_Com_C06-137-003_-_Jayne_Mansfield_%281%29.jpg/440px-ETH-Bibliothek_Z%C3%BCrich%2C_Bildarchiv_-_Com_C06-137-003_-_Jayne_Mansfield_%281%29.jpg" />
ellauri411.html on line 114: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4f/Marduk_and_pet.jpg/440px-Marduk_and_pet.jpg" height="600" />
ellauri411.html on line 158: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/39/Wenceslas_Hollar_-_God_calls_Abraham_%28State_2%29_2.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri411.html on line 168: We cannot speak of Jewish history without referencing the ancient Israelites. Who were the ancient Israelites? They were the peopl e who lived around the area that is modern Israel – also known as the promised land – before 1000 BCE. This area also used to be called the ancient Levant or ancient Canaan. The Israelites believed they were the descendants of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob. But it is more likely that they were simpl y a cultural and linguistic homogenous group of peopl e. Now it is politically wiser to say that they had been there all along:
ellauri411.html on line 169: The evidence for the actual history of how İsrael became İsrael does not align with the Torah narrative that closely according to the current research and archaeology- rather than being migrants from elsewhere, it appears our ancient ancestors were just indigenous peopl e who began differentiating themselves politically from their neighbours via the adoption If a monolatrous, or henotheistic religion that later evolved into monotheistic Judaism several centuries later. Henotheism is the worship and or belief of a single deity, while accepting the existence or possible existence of other deities. Monolatry is the recognition of many deities, but only consistent worship of a single deity.
ellauri411.html on line 172: The story of the Exodus and liberation from Egyptian enslavement is something that binds the Jewish peopl e even closer together. The story goes that ancient Israel was suffering from great droughts. Thus, the ancient Israelites went down to ancient Egypt in search of sustenance. They were a minority in the Egyptian population and were enslaved by the Egyptian pharaohs. However, God intervened through the prophet Moses. He sent down the pl agues to trouble the Egyptians and Moses led the Israelites away from Egypt.
ellauri411.html on line 176: Whether the Exodus from Egypt actually happened or not, it left the Israelites from 1000 BCE with a powerful feeling of bonding and community. They were personally invested in that history. The story of the liberation from Egypt gave them a powerful feeling of patriotism and it bound them together as one peopl e.
ellauri411.html on line 178: The ‘Golden Period’ of ancient Israel is the years between 1010 and 931 BCE. This was the era in which King David and King Solomon ruled. The former is believed to have built the city of Jerusalem at the center of ancient Israel. King Solomon is believed to have constructed the first great templ e in 957 BCE. It is safe to say that the so-called golden age only lasted for a very short time before the Assyrian Empire conquered them.
ellauri411.html on line 180: Of the twelve tribes, the northern ten tribes made up Israel and the two southern tribes made up the tiny kingdom of Judea. Although the latter survived the conquest of the Assyrian Empire, what with Hosea paying them tons of silver in tribute, they received a severe blow when the Empire of Babylon conquered it. This could have been the end of the Jewish religion since the Babylonians were in the habit of destroying the cultures of the pl aces they invaded and conquered. However, many Jews fled to different parts of the Middle East and Egypt. This led to the beginning of the Jewish diaspora.
ellauri411.html on line 182: While the Israelite religion is not exactly the Jewish religion that is practiced in the modern day, it still has many similarities with it. The history of the ancient Jewish peopl e is the story of a small group of peopl e, surrounded by larger and more powerful parties, trying to hold on to their identity despite that. They were a monotheistic peopl e with a very fervent belief in their one God which helped them preserve their identity, culture, and religion in the face of all the polytheistic religions they were surrounded by.
ellauri411.html on line 184: The Babylonian Empire didn’t last long beyond their conquest of Judea. The Babylonians were soon defeated and conquered by the Persians, who had very different policies about the peopl e they conquered. They did not believe in exiling elites and wiping out local cultures. Rather, they wanted to ensure peace by restoring peopl e to their homelands and letting them live by their ancestral laws. They even helped them rebuild their templ es.
ellauri411.html on line 186: For this reason, the Persian Emperor Cyrus is extremely important to the Jewish peopl e. He allowed the many Jews who had fled to return to Judea. The Israelites were henceforth known as Judeans (and later Jews) by everyone else. They still refer to themselves as the descendants of Israel however. This period of Persian rule is when the Torah, which had been passed down orally till then, was written down.
ellauri411.html on line 188: After this came the Greeks and the invasion of Alexander. That had a huge impact on the Jews, just as it did on the rest of the ancient world. Many Jews ended up joining his armies and traveling with him to various parts of the world. Everywhere that Alexander established a city (always called Alexandria) he gave peopl e land grants to settle there. Thus, Jews settled all over the Hellenistic Empire.
ellauri411.html on line 194: The Greeks did not think it fair that the Jews should be included in this compromise. They saw them as being lawless and uncivilized. They even accused them of hating God and having secret rituals where they cannibalized other humans. They accused the Romans of taking away privileges from the Greeks and giving them to Jews instead. The local peopl e of Egypt, resentful of all outsiders, also bought into this false narrative and became increasingly anti-Jewish as well.
ellauri411.html on line 200: Christianity separated from Judaism by claiming Christianity as a repl acement for Judaism. The leaders claimed that the Jews were reading their scriptures wrong and the Christians were the true Israelites. They claimed the Jews were blind and ignorant. When the Roman Empire conquered Judea and destroyed the Templ e, the Christians took this as further confirmation of their beliefs.
ellauri411.html on line 225: ploads/2023/06/Judaica-768x512.jpg" />
ellauri411.html on line 230: Etrog (Hebrew: אֶתְרוֹג, pl ural: etrogim; Ashkenazi Hebrew: esrog, pl ural: esrogim) is the yellow citron (Citrus medica) used by Jews during the weeklong holiday of Sukkot as one of the four species. Together with the lulav, hadass, and aravah, the etrog is taken in hand and held or waved during specific portions of the holiday prayers. Special care is often given to selecting an etrog for the performance of the Sukkot holiday rituals:
ellauri411.html on line 248: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/17/Ashera._Eretz_Israel_Mus.jpg" />
ellauri411.html on line 265: Ranskalaisen tutkijan Rombert Ambelainin teoksen Jesus, Paul, Golgathas kolmannen osan toinen osa (käännetty kreikaksi) kehittää hyvin omaperäisen teorian Paavalista. Tämä teoria on "hyvinvointi", eli se myöntää Paavalin historiallisen olemassaolon, mutta hylkää kaiken hänen toimintansa jumalallisen alkuperän. Kahdella sanalla, Ambelainin mukaan Paavali ei ollut juutalainen vaan idumealainen, kuningas Herodes Suuren äidin pojanpoika ja isän toinen veljenpoika. Koska hän rakastui syvästi juutalaisen ylipapin Gamalielin tyttäreen ja aikoi mennä naimisiin tämän kanssa, hän kääntyi juutalaisuuteen ja ympärileikattiin. Matkan varrella avioliitto kuitenkin hajosi ja Paavali, itsepäisyydestä ja kompl ekseista hyvin ruma ja sairas, kääntyi faute de mieux kristinuskoon. Lukuun ottamatta muutamia virheitä, olettamuksia ja teorioita, joita hän yrittää edistää, Ambelainin mainitsemat todisteet ovat tutkimisen arvoisia.
ellauri411.html on line 317: Ihmiskuntaa hallitsee ja pitää sen orjuutena, eivät yksittäisten yksilöiden syntit, "joiden puolesta Kristus kuoli", kuten evankeliumit yleisesti ja nimenomaan ilmaisevat, vaan paljon terävämpi käsite. Yksilö pelastuu tästä kirouksesta (Jumalan Jahven esikoisia vastaan) vain uskon, armon, uhrin, veren, kohtalon kautta ( esim. Room. 5:15 jne., kuten pian näemme.). Ja kirouksen merkitys tässä on se alkuperäinen Jumalan Jahven kirous esikoista vastaan, joka pitää koko ihmiskunnan välittömän tuhon ja iankaikkisen rangaistuksen hirsipuun alla, Jumalan Jahven vihan vuoksi. Nämä synnin ja kirouksen käsitteiden yleistykset ja epämääräisyydet olivat väärässä paikassa, valitettavaa, virheellistä ja tuhoisaa pseudopl atonismia ja jopa juutalaisskeptikkojen gnostiikkaa ja merkityksettömiä Paavalin kreikkalaisen filosofian kannalta!
ellauri411.html on line 347: Paavalin kirjeet ( sekä Johanneksen ensimmäinen evankeliumi : 1-5, 13-14, 18 jne.) sisältävät siellä täällä elementtejä, jotka muistuttavat meitä uuspl atonismista ja gnostilaisuudesta, mm. Roomalaisille 5 : 12-21, 1:13-17, 1 Korinttolaisille 1 : 12-15 , 24, 2:1-5, 7, 1: 1,6 2 Korinttolaisille 3 : 5 -11 , 1: 4, 18-20, Efesolaiskirje 1 : 10 , 3 : 9-11, 5: 12, helvettiin I : 15-20, 2: 3, Filippiläisille 2 : 6-11 , 1 Tim mo on 1 : 16 , 2 Timoteukselle on 1 : 9-10, Heprealaisille 1 : 2-3 , e, h (huom. erityisesti jae 7), i , i.
ellauri411.html on line 607: Apostolien teot k΄ : 24, Room. 3:24 , id΄ : 24-26, Ε΄: 4 (myös aikaisempien aikojen kirjoille ) 1 Korinttolaisille 1΄ : 7-8 , b΄: 7, 13, c΄: 10 , g΄: 40, k΄: 23, i΄: 36-37, Β ΄ Plussat Corinthios a΄ : 21-22, ΄΄: 14, e΄ 5: 8 , A ΄ Plussat Ti koi on a΄ : 11, B ΄ Plussat Tim koi päällä ΄ : 16 , pl ussat Titon a΄΄ : 3 , jopa 2 ΄ Pietari 3΄ : 15 jne. Mutta hyvin omituisesti 1. Korinttilaisille 7: 6, 12 , 25 ja 2 Korinttilaisille 1:17 tämä inspiraatio on pysähtynyt! Hän kertoo meille, ettei hänellä ollut Herran käskyä näissä asioissa, ja siksi hänen oli pakko sanoa itse, mitä hänelle tuolloin mieleen juolahti! Mihin tämä kaikkialla läsnä oleva jumalallinen inspiraatio sitten katosi? Pelastuiko hän?! Meillä on siis toinen ristiriita sen kanssa, mitä hän kirjoittaa 2. Timoteukselle 3:16:ssa "jokainen kirjoitus on Jumalan inspiroima".
ellauri411.html on line 635: play.com/cti/3d/4d/1d/3d4d1d88a83fd61e567503f3cd711f39/1716313368.gif" />
ellauri412.html on line 42: RYMDENS HÄRSKARE play:none">Nyt pohditaan
ellauri412.html on line 47: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0b/William-Adolphe_Bouguereau_%281825-1905%29_-_Homer_and_his_Guide_%281874%29.jpg/400px-William-Adolphe_Bouguereau_%281825-1905%29_-_Homer_and_his_Guide_%281874%29.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri412.html on line 51: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/13/Duccio_di_Buoninsegna_062.jpg/280px-Duccio_di_Buoninsegna_062.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri412.html on line 55: The second Isaiah section, Deutero-Isaiah, was likely written by an anonymous writer (or writers) in the Sixth century BCE when the Jewish peopl e were in exile. This is a time jump of approximately 150 years; the city of Jerusalem has already been destroyed and the peopl e are living in captivity. It is not likely that Proto Isaiah was acquainted with Lälli Kooros the Second, four-wheel drive cherubs notwithstanding. Ne jotka kannattavat näkemystä kolmesta kirjoittajasta, jakavat kirjan toisen kerran luvun 55 kohdalta. Heidän mukaansa Tritojesaja on lisännyt kirjaan vielä Babylonin episodin jälkeen fan fiction tyyppisiä siikveleitä.
ellauri412.html on line 62: ploads/2023/01/Isaiahs-wife-pin.jpg?ssl=1" width="40%" />
ellauri412.html on line 64: I met a sweet gal named Jerusha. Upon hearing her name, I squealed, “I’ve never met a Jerusha!!” She looked rather startled. (I do that to peopl e sometimes.) “You know who Jerusha is?” “Of course! She’s King Uzziah’s wife in the Bible.” This sweet girl smiled and confessed she’d stumped many Bible nerds with her name. I wouldn’t have known either unless I’d been studying Isaiah and the kings who reigned during his ministry. Here’s another woman I’ve read over at least a dozen times–Ahinoam. I knew one of David’s wives was Ahinoam, but did you know King Saul’s wife was also named Ahinoam? Aha! Got you there! And what about Job’s wife? Scripture doesn’t even name her. We only know her as the crotchety old gal that gripes at her suffering husband. The shepherd girl in Solomon’s Song of Songs is another one who gets no name. At least we know she was loved. And how! Isaiah’s wife is another woman mentioned but given no name.
ellauri412.html on line 74: VIDEO
ellauri412.html on line 152: Autioksi maa autioituu, tyhjäksi se ryöstetään. Näin on Herra sen suunnitellut. Maa kulottuu ja kuivuu, maanpiiri riutuu ja kuivuu, maan lailla taivaskin riutuu. Maa muuttuu saastaiseksi jalkojen alla, sillä sen asukkaat ovat kaivaneet ylös fossiilit ja kasvattaneet hiilijalanjälkeä. Sentään pl uspuolelta voi mainita, että maan asukkaat käyvät vähiin, vain muutama harva jää jäljelle ihmisen suvusta. Enää ei juoda viiniä, ei lauleta, juoma on käynyt juojilleen karvaaksi, kaikilla on virzakiviä. Kujilla kaikuu valitus viinin loppumisesta,
ellauri412.html on line 175: It's October 31 and I don't go looking for the occult or demonic, it's just there, and lucky you - I'm going to share it with you. Today's diatribe on paganist beliefs that can lead you straight into the bowels of hell is brought to you by Asherah. When you want your sex and religion on the same pl ate, Asherah is the pagan fertility goddess for you.
ellauri412.html on line 177: Asherah, or Ashtoreth, was the name of the chief female deity worshiped in ancient Syria, Phoenicia, and Canaan. The Phoenicians called her Astarte, the Assyrians worshiped her as Ishtar, and the Philistines had a templ e of Asherah. Asherah was a fertility goddess, and considered a high deity by the Canaanites on the level of their god Baal. God wasn't crazy about Asherah worship and warned Israel about it several times, commanding them repeatedly to tear down the symbols of Asherah worship, the Asherah pole, also known as Asherim or Asherah Groves:
ellauri412.html on line 181: You shall tear down their altars and smash their sacred pillars and burn their Asherim with fire, and you shall cut down the engraved images of their gods and obliterate their name from that pl ace. (Deuteronomy 12:3)
ellauri412.html on line 183: You shall not pl ant for yourself an Asherah of any kind of tree beside the altar of the LORD your God, which you shall make for yourself. (Deuteronomy 16:21)
ellauri412.html on line 191: It appears these rites took pl ace on hilltops beneath the Asherah poles or trees.
ellauri412.html on line 195: 22 Judah did evil in the sight of the Lord, and they provoked Him to jealousy more than all that their fathers had done, with the sins which they committed. 23 For they also built for themselves high pl aces and sacred pillars and Asherim on every high hill and beneath every luxuriant tree. 24 There were also male cult prostitutes in the land. They did according to all the abominations of the nations which the Lord dispossessed before the sons of Israel. (1 Kings 14:22-24)
ellauri412.html on line 199: From the orgies with templ e prostitutes on the high pl aces under the trees surrounding Jerusalem, in ancient times, to the sex magick promoted by modern day occultists like Aleister Crowley (known through the UK as the most evil man in history), Anton LaVey (High priest and founder of the Church of Satan) and Gerald Gardner (the inventor of Wicca), the idea of sexual activity being an important part of occult has permeated every culture since man began to congregate. In the East you have “tantric” practices in Hindu and Buddhism. Throughout Europe, you have pagan sex rituals. And in the Holy Land we've covered the Bible's warning about the templ e prostitutes which permeated the land throughout history–through Babylon, Rome, and Greece. Pagan idolatry always involves sex. Whereas sex is virtually absent from The Bible, well, from New Testament anyhow.
ellauri412.html on line 201: So knowing that God's warning against worshiping Asherah is repeated over and over and over you would think that mankind would get the idea that worshiping Asherah is a bad idea. And if you thought that you would be wrong. If there's one thing that the Old Testament teaches us above and beyond all other lessons is that fact that Peopl e Just Don't Learn. Seriously. The one man that God blessed with power and money and family and wisdom; Solomon, guess what he did? Go on, guess. Okay, I'll tell you anyway, it's rather juicy.
ellauri412.html on line 203: 1 King Solomon, however, loved many foreign women besides Pharaoh’s daughter - Moabites, Ammonites, Edomites, Sidonians and Hittites. 2 They were from nations about which the Lord had told the Israelites, “You must not intermarry with them, because they will surely turn your hearts after their gods.” Nevertheless, Solomon held fast to them in love. 3 He had seven hundred wives of royal birth and three hundred concubines, and his wives led him astray. 4 As Solomon grew old, his wives turned his heart after other gods, and his heart was not fully devoted to the Lord his God, as the heart of David his father had been. 5 He followed Ashtoreth the goddess of the Sidonians, and Molek the detestable god of the Ammonites. 6 So Solomon did evil in the eyes of theLord; he did not follow the Lord compl etely, as David his father had done. (1 Kings 11:1-6)
ellauri412.html on line 208: There are some peopl e out there that believe that Christmas trees are modern day Asherah poles but their argument is weak. You have a better chance of making an argument that Christmas trees are neo-pagan earth worship rather than Asherah poles. Ron Garret at Ron Big Black Garrett blog makes a strong case for stripper poles being Asherah poles, and I have to agree with him. Satan doesn't have to think up new tricks when the old ones work just fine.
ellauri412.html on line 210: And Satan's even stopped trying to hide the Asherah poles as something else, now Asherah poles are in vogue on the left coast. Bars are being decorated with Asherah poles, the fad started at a fashion show where a designer used religious icons to decorate the stage and according to the article peopl e raved about the asherah poles so much that club owners started putting them in bars. It saddens me that these peopl e are so blinded by their ignorance that they are publicly, cluelessly worshiping Satan merely because it's hip and cool to do so.
ellauri412.html on line 216: Lord in heaven, my Father and creator of all things great and small, if it is in your will pl ease have mercy on your sick, sad, sin filled creatures. Please help those of us who know You and worship You and praise You to bring Your word to our fellow sinners. Please help us glorify You by allowing us to lead them to Your unfucked son Jesus Christ where the Holy Spirit can continue Your pl an of divine salvation with another virgin. In Christ Jesus name we beg of you. Cut off our peckers if nothing else avails. Or get rid of women, those fleshy Ashera poles!
ellauri412.html on line 220: ploads/2018/10/asera.jpg" />
ellauri412.html on line 326: Kosto lähestyy, tilinteon hetki. Jumala itse tulee ja pelastaa teidät. Silloin aukenevat sokeiden silmät ja kuurojen korvat avautuvat, rampa hyppii silloin kuin kauris, mykän kieli laulaa riemuaan. Lähteitä puhkeaa autiomaahan, vuolaina virtaavat purot arolla. Hehkuva hiekka muuttuu lammikoiksi, janoinen maa pulppuaviksi lähteiksi. Siellä, missä hyeenat lepäilivät, kasvaa silloin rantakaislaa ja papyrusta. Ja sinne syntyy tie vesilinnuille, valtatie, sitä kutsutaan Pyhäksi tieksi. Epäpyhä ei saa sille astua. Oman tien kulkijoille se kuuluu, heille yksin. Siellä ei tyhmäkään eksy, kun ei ole risteyxiä eikä laitoja. Leijona ei nouse sille tielle, ei yksikään raateleva peto, ei yksikään paizi ehkä krokodiili ja Leviatan. Vain vapaiksi lunastetut sitä vaeltavat. Herran vapaiksi (keneltä?) ostamat palaavat ja saapuvat riemuiten Siioniin. He kantavat päänsä päällä ikuista iloa pl us kahta hattua.
ellauri412.html on line 464: Kpl 53 vaikuttaa kristilliseltä ennusteelta. Täällä esiintyy se syntipukkiajatus aika puhtaana:
ellauri412.html on line 517: ploads/2019/12/isa53-sufferingservant-768x697.jpg" />
ellauri412.html on line 606: Kuten teologi John MacArthur toteaa: ”Sanaaminen ”oikaatio” voidaan kääntää ”royal spl endor”. Siksi näyttää luonnollisimmalta tulkita tätä lupauksen viittaamiseksi kirkastamiseen, jota opetuslasten "jotkut" -Peter, Jaakob ja Johannes - todistaisivat vain kuusi päivää myöhemmin. (Kenties se tapahtui pikemmin kuin Jepu arvasikaan. Helvetin sammuttamisessa ei mennyt monta hetkeä.)
ellauri412.html on line 643: Vastaus: Josh. I agree that in the full book of Isaiah we cannot simpl y say that the suffering servant always equals Yeshua. Prophetic literature is a difficult genre, for sure. There are passages where Isaiah clearly refers to the nation of Israel, and other times he is clearly referring to an individual, Cyrus. It´s only in the forbidden chapter that it talks of our particular HaMashiach.
ellauri412.html on line 648: This prophecy was written 1000 years before Jesus was born. And coincidently, Judaism has tried to insert multipl e messiahs to fit their own narrative of rejecting Jesus. How can you (Judaism) reject a chapter to fit your narrative of you still waiting for your messiah to come. If it’s in the word of God it is to be taken what the Lord God through the holy spirit had written. This is why, Christianity who follow Christ, we read the entire book of The Lord God We don’t have the right as his followers to reject or omit what the Lord Has written. If I was following Judaism then I would question and start to think with my own insight about how can you reject a chapter that the Lord God put in the Holy Bible, and then you have orthodox Jew who has come to the truth of Jesus Christ.
ellauri412.html on line 657: How do you know the canonical gospel authors weren’t simpl y creating fictions about Jesus to make him sound more like the suffering servant of Isaiah 53 than he really was? Of course you will tout the historical reliability of the gospels, but I would provide scholarly resistance to that conclusion every step of the way. The question is not whether YOU can be reasonable to see Jesus as the Isaiah 53 servant but whether skeptics can reasonably deny this allegation.
ellauri412.html on line 676: Look, if you’re reading the Bible as an atheist and asking about a reasonable interpretation, then the world is your oyster. You are not required to accept the worldview of the authors of the Bible, who all believed in God and wrote about Him from that perspective. And at the same time, as someone who does not believe God exists and does not accept the inspired nature or inerrancy of scripture, you have limited your possible interpretations of Scripture to only natural expl anations that do not invoke God. This is going to cause significant problems with your use of the historical-grammatical method, which strives to discover the biblical author’s original intended meaning in the text. For exampl e, every time Isaiah writes, “thus says the Lord” (which is a lot!), how will you interpret that? For an atheist, a statement like that either makes Isiah delusional (he believed a non-existent God told him something) or a charlatan (he’s knowingly asserting a false attribution).
ellauri412.html on line 678: Either way, why dig in your heels about a single verse? Without a belief in God, Isaiah’s “suffering servant” could be referring to anything. Maybe he was writing about his crazy uncle who gave up his life for a neighboring tribe. Or maybe he was writing about aliens from another pl anet. Or maybe it is pure fiction from the mind of a delusional believer in a non-existent God. The one thing you are not allowed to reasonably conclude if you are an atheist is that Isaiah, as a prophet, was recording a message revealed to him God. Which is exactly what Isaiah would have thought he was writing at the time.
ellauri412.html on line 681: ———-No, I’m arguing for the proper interpretation of a myth I don’t believe in, in order to falsify the Christian interpretation of it, because the Christian interpretation of it pl ays a part in ensnaring innocently gullible unbelievers into thinking they “need” to repent and spend the rest of their lives talking to an invisible man who allegedly wants a “personal relationship” with them in a way that would make no sense unless the new believer radically redefines “personal relationship”.
ellauri412.html on line 686: Vastaus: I get what you’re saying, Barry. Your objection is moral in nature. God ought to prevent his children from disaster, he ought to stop rapists, and it is immoral of him not to do so. And because of His moral lapse, you conclude that God’s love must be limited; He must not be omnibenevolent. It’s a modern take on Epicurus. And it’s a strong argument. Its tacit impl ication is that if God was really all-good, all-wise, and all-powerful, He should have created a universe without evil, suffering, or disaster. This impl ication suggests a presupposition that one of the highest moral values is an absence of evil and suffering. However, Christianity teaches there is an even higher moral value than an absence of evil and suffering: namely, love. You can't show how much you love if you don't first create some suffering.
ellauri412.html on line 688: Scripture reveals that our suffering is not without purpose. It can produce character and hope (Rom 5:3-4; Jas 1:2-4), draw us to God (2 Cor 1:9), teach us to love (2 Cor 1:4-5), and pl ay an important role in our sanctification (Heb 12:6-10; Eph 5:26-27). Suffering also pl ays a critical role in our salvation (1 Pet 4:12-16). In fact, I think our salvation is the reason Heaven cannot contain love and free will without the existence of evil. It is like putting your foot out of the bed: it won´t feel good before you have felt what bad is like.
ellauri412.html on line 690: But here’s the thing. In the atheist worldview, there is no such thing as objective evil. Few atheists have the courage to admit that, of course. Richard Dawkins is one. He wrote: “In a universe of electrons and selfish genes, blind physical forces and genetic repl ication, some peopl e are going to get hurt, other peopl e are going to get lucky, and you won’t find any rhyme or reason in it, nor any justice. The universe that we observe has precisely the properties we should expect if there is, at bottom, no design, no purpose, no evil, no good, nothing but pitiless indifference.”
ellauri412.html on line 692: Dawkins is right. He says what Darwin told us. One guy's good is the other guy's bad. Rape feels great for the rapist, he would not do it otherwise. The atheist can perhaps categorize rape as undesirable, or unpl easant, or sub-optimal for society. But they have no real basis on which to label it objectively morally wrong. Your moral outrage at that child’s rape belies your atheism, my friend. Well, who needs objectivity, suum quique is quite enough.
ellauri412.html on line 826: According to Leviticus 25:37, “You shall not lend [your brother] your money at interest.” Exodus 22:25 stipulates” “If you lend money to any of my peopl e with you who is poor, you shall not be like a moneylender to him, and you shall not exact interest from him.” Deuteronomy 23:20 says much the same thing about loans within the Israelite community, but with the important caveat that “you may charge a foreigner interest.” We can see why charging interest has often been frowned upon.
ellauri412.html on line 830: So did the church change its mind about usury? No, but it did become more precise with its definition. “Usury isn’t charging interest on a loan to offset the risk of the loan and the cost of forgoing other uses for the money; it’s unjustly charging someone for a loan by expl oiting them when they’re in dire straits”. This seems to be a fair distinction given the context of the Old Testament provisions.
ellauri412.html on line 849: Röyhkeät apinat on 1. kertaa ihmiskunnan historiassa saaneet pl aneetan vesikierron sijoiltaan. Hyvä apinat! Way to go!
ellauri413.html on line 42:
AGENTTI ROMANI play:none">Nyt rähistään
ellauri413.html on line 43: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/d/d9/Asterix_Roman_Agent.png" width="100%" />
ellauri413.html on line 58: minne mennä." Israelin ilmaiskut tappoivat ainakin 492 ihmistä, mukaan lukien 35 lasta, Libanonissa maanantaina 23. syyskuuta, terveysministeriö sanoi, mikä on tappavin rajat ylittävä eskalaatio sitten Gazan sodan puhkeamisen. Sidonissa kaupungin ja provinssien viranomaiset hämmästyivät Israelin Etelä-Libanoniin kohdistamien iskujen aiheuttaman katastrofin laajuudesta. Vain yhdessä päivässä Israelin pommitukset tappoivat melkein yhtä monta ihmistä kuin taisteluvuoden aikana, mikä herätti muistoja vuoden 2006 sodasta pl us varhaisempia muistoja 3000 vuoden ajalta.
ellauri413.html on line 75: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/35/Sidonie_N%C3%A1dhern%C3%A1_1917_%28SOA_Praha%29.jpg/800px-Sidonie_N%C3%A1dhern%C3%A1_1917_%28SOA_Praha%29.jpg" width="40%" />
ellauri413.html on line 78: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c9/Manuel_-_Colette.jpg" />
ellauri413.html on line 88: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/30/Leighton%2C_Frederic_-_Jezabel_and_Ahab_-_c.1863.jpg/800px-Leighton%2C_Frederic_-_Jezabel_and_Ahab_-_c.1863.jpg" />
ellauri413.html on line 93: 1942 wurde Schloss Janowitz von deutschen Truppen beschlagnahmt und dem SS-Truppenübungspl atz Böhmen zugeordnet. Nach dem Krieg versuchte Nádherná vergeblich, den Familienbesitz zurückzuerhalten. Schloss Janowitz wurde von der Armee genutzt und 1948 von den tschechoslowakischen Kommunisten enteignet. Nádherná war kurzzeitig verhaftet und floh über Bayern nach Großbritannien. 1950 starb sie verarmt im englischen Exil.
ellauri413.html on line 112: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/96/Kivimaa-Suomalainen-1965.jpg/500px-Kivimaa-Suomalainen-1965.jpg" />
ellauri413.html on line 202: ploads/2019/05/img_2267-1.png" width="90%" />
ellauri413.html on line 240: ploads/2021/08/26-2.jpg" />
ellauri413.html on line 274: ploads/posts/2023-02/1676669256_topdevka-com-p-erotika-lada-pagliya-60.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri413.html on line 297: Petrik, 36, från Mellerud var frivilligsoldat som krigade mot Ryssland i Ukraina. I oktober stupade han framstupa, föll pl adask huvudstupa. – Det är det samtalet man alltid gått och fruktat, säger pappa Thor till P4 Väst. Ja, det var det samtalet man alltid gått och fruktat, och när det kommer hoppas man att han är skadad, men det var inte så, utan ännu bättre: han hade stupat, säger Thor till P4 Väst. Trots att han vid ett tidigare uppdrag skadades svårt i benet och fick ligga en längre tid på sjukhus, återgick han senare till sin tjänst. Av andra svenskar på pl ats i Ukraina beskrivs Petrik som en positiv människa. Trots alla uppl evelser han var med om, alla extremt tuffa situationer, liksom spränga i småbitar ryska civilister, så hade han alltid ett leende. Enligt pappa Thor ansåg Petrik att hotet från Ryssland är reellt även för svensk del – om de inte stoppas i Ukraina. Kom ihåg vad hände 1809, ryssarna kom hela vägen efter oss springandes till Umeå!
ellauri413.html on line 641: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4a/Gregorio_Lazzarini_-_Rinaldo_and_Armida.jpg/440px-Gregorio_Lazzarini_-_Rinaldo_and_Armida.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri418.html on line 42: PUTKIAIVO play:none">Usvaa putkeen
ellauri418.html on line 43: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/8/89/Putkinotko-tv-sarjan_dvd-julkaisun_kansi.jpg/510px-Putkinotko-tv-sarjan_dvd-julkaisun_kansi.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri418.html on line 51: pl us cruel à mon âme sensible, et ils ont brisé
ellauri418.html on line 79: pload/f_auto,fl_progressive/q_80/w_300/v1624525958/39-82520060d44b1edbc9f.jpg" />
ellauri418.html on line 188: Ukrainas förre överbefälhavare Valerij Zaluzjnyj hävdar att tredje världskriget redan har börjat, med hänvisning till Nordkoreas, Irans och Kinas stöd till Ryssland i kriget mot Ukraina. Zaluzjnyj menar att Ukraina inte bara strider mot Ryssland, utan också möter soldater från Nordkorea, iranska drönare och kinesiska vapen som används i Ukraina. Han vädjar till väst att stoppa konflikten i Ukraina innan den sprider sig och påpekar att Ukraina inte kan vinna striden på egen hand. Zaluzjnyj, som avskedades av president Zelenskyj tidigare i år, har både hyllats för att ha stoppat den ryska invasionen 2022 och kritiserats för misslyckade motoffensiven 2023. Ryssland har varnat för potentiella vedergällningar mot väst och pekat ut den amerikanska robotförsvarsbasen i Redzikowo i Polen som prioriterat mål. Ryssland besköt Ukraina med ett nytt experimentellt vapen på torsdagen. – Putin använder Ukraina som en försökspl ats, det är uppenbart att han är livrädd, säger Volodymyr Zelenskyj. Det är inte jag. Vladimir Putin påstår att den nya roboten inte går att stoppa – men varnade ändå USA kort före attacken. Kyseessä on "Hasselpähkinä", ballistinen yliääniohjus joka menee 10 km sekunnissa eikä sitä mikään pysäytä. Hienoa ettei vähävenäläistä pelota.
ellauri418.html on line 200: ploads/2024/11/Anja-Snellman-ja-Jarko-Tontti.-Podcast-8.11.2024-768x418.jpg" />
ellauri418.html on line 279: Tätä uutista seurasi välitön reaktio: amerikkalainen yritys Google tuomittiin maxamaan 2 undesiljoonaa rupl aa eli 2 ja 39 nollaa!
ellauri418.html on line 325: "Tilanne on tänään paljon huonompi kuin viimeisen viiden vuoden aikana", myöntää Jooseppi reilusti. Borrell oli yksi äänekkäimmistä EU:n johtajista, mutta lopultakin pelkkä suunpiexäjä. No pl uspuolelle oon laskettava, että hänen toistuvat kehotuksensa "empatiaan" palestiinalaisia kohtaan olivat ristiriidassa Euroopan komission puheenjohtajan kylmän Ursula von der Leyenin suhteellisen vaikenemisen kanssa erillisalueen inhimillisen kärsimyksen laajuudesta. Noin 70 prosenttia Gazassa kuolleista on ollut naisia ja lapsia.
ellauri418.html on line 327: Hollannin ulkoministeri Adolf Meinkampf sanoi odottavansa innolla yhteistyötä Viron entisen pääministerin Kaja Kallasen kanssa, joka seuraa Borrellia sunnuntaina. Häntä pidetään Venäjän vastaisena haukkana, mutta hän on toistaiseksi ollut hiljaa Lähi-idän kriisistä. "On toivottavaa, että Kaja Kallas ymmärtää pitää turpansa kiinni tästä kansanmurhasta," EU-dipl omaatti lisäsi.
ellauri418.html on line 341: ploads/2020/06/Inga-scaled-e1597657418639.jpg" width="70%" />
ellauri418.html on line 353: På båten har man bland annat hittat fingeravtryck, dna-spår och spår av det sprängämne som användes vid sabotaget av gasledningen. En bil som fångades på en fartkamera kunde koppl as till segelbåten och sedermera också till de misstänkta ukrainarna. Tidningen Süddeutsche Zeitung har talat med den efterlyste ukrainska mannen som förnekar inblandning. Även den misstänkta kvinnan blånekar till dådet. Nyet, nyet, säger dom på flytande ukrainska.
ellauri418.html on line 357: Enligt WSJ mynnade pl anerna ut i att attacken utfördes av sex personer på en segelbåt som hyrdes i Tyskland. Besättningen var specialutbildade, fyra av dem dykare. Något som stämmer överens med den tyska utredningen. Uppenbarligen visste Zelensky om pl anen och sade "Da" till den på bruten ukrainska.
ellauri418.html on line 359: Enligt källor inom den ukrainska militären, ska president Volodymyr Zelenskyj gett sitt godkännande till attacken men efter påtryckningar från CIA ändrat sig och gett order om att istället stoppa pl aneringen. Men Ukrainas dåvarande ÖB Valerij Zaluzjny ska enligt WSJ i sin tur ignorerat presidentens order och låtit pl anerna fortgå. – Det som jag reagerar på är att det enligt WSJ:s källor inte fanns något sätt att stoppa attacken. Det här väcker frågan varför Zelenskyj som president för Ukraina inte kunde stoppa den här attacken om han ville stoppa den, säger Florian Flade. Både Volodymyr Zelenskyj och Valerij Zaluzjny har blånekat sin inblandning i attacken.
ellauri418.html on line 361: Den totala kostnaden efter expl osionerna uppskattas till omkring 13,5 miljarder svenska kronor. Det är jordnotter jämfört med hur mycket Tyskland givit åt Ukraina i vapen och kontanter. Yhteensä Saksan liittotasavalta on tähän mennessä antanut tai sitoutunut antamaan tulevina vuosina sotilasapua noin 28 miljardin euron arvosta.
ellauri419.html on line 41: ploads/2024/11/Anticop-768x497.png" width="100%" />
ellauri419.html on line 42: ANTI COP
play:none">Peopl e in motion
ellauri419.html on line 52: The European Union teamed up with 11 countries Thursday in announcing a commitment to “ambitious” new climate pl ans — but the U.S., an architect of the initiative, did not join them. The governments that pl edged to come up with new targets were Canada, Chile, Georgia, Mexico, Norway and Switzerland pl us the European Union. Switzerland said it would do so by February. Greta Thunberg rubbished the crooked COPs in no uncertain words and called for a new improved pl anetary leadership. In your dreams Gretchen.
ellauri419.html on line 55: Toutes les COP sont des salauds ! La COP29 tente de cacher, derrière un écoblanchiment hypocrite, le bilan de l’écocide, du génocide et des atrocités commises par l’Azerbaïdjan contre le peupl e arménien, qui ne sont pas seulement un chapitre terrible de l’histoire, mais un écho de la façon dont la guerre et l’expl oitation des ressources naturelles et des personnes s’entremêlent et exacerbent la crise climatique et sociale à laquelle nous sommes confrontés. L’omission du génocide du peupl e palestinien lors de la COP28 à Dubaï en est un exempl e.
ellauri419.html on line 57: Le système capitaliste actuel nous a conduits à un monde où la faune et la flore ont diminué de 73 % en 50 ans seulement. Il y a quelques jours, la COP16 sur la biodiversité s’est achevée à Cali, en Colombie, où, en dépit de certains résultats obtenus par les peupl es indigènes, les afro-descendants et les paysans, on n’a généralement simulé qu’une préoccupation pour la Mère Nature, nos biens naturels et nos territoires qui sauvegardent 80 % de la biodiversité actuelle.
ellauri419.html on line 61: Esimerkixi jollain toisella pl aneetalla.
ellauri419.html on line 70: L’AntiCOP était bien pl us qu’une réponse à la COP officielle, elle est devenue un espace de rencontre et d’articulation des peupl es en résistance, un mouvement qui défie l’extractivisme, le colonialisme vert et les mégaprojets qui dépossèdent nos communautés de leurs ressources et de leurs terres. C’est aussi une articulation d’en bas qui se souvient, imagine et construit d’autres mondes en harmonie avec les écosystèmes, la biodiversité et la justice. A partir d’AntiCOP 2024, nous nous engageons à continuer à construire ensemble, en respectant nos différences et en reconnaissant nos luttes communes. Nous sommes le Sud global, nous sommes les gardiens de nos terres et de nos cultures. Cette lutte est la nôtre et nous la défendons avec détermination et unité.
ellauri419.html on line 72: Avec la présence de personnes des 5 continents de la pl anète, de représentants des peupl es Waorani, Yaqui, Purépecha, Zapotec, Chatino, Mixteco, Ngiwa, Chontal, Wayuu, Ikoot, Sami, K’Ana, Kanak, Maya Q’echi et Nasalas, ainsi que de régions géographiques connues telles que la Colombie, la Zambie, Aruba, Bonaire, la Papouasie occidentale, le Baloutchistan, la Bolivie, le Salvador, l’Équateur, le Zimbabwe, le Canada, le Pérou, le Bénin, l’Allemagne, les Pays-Bas, le Guatemala, la Suisse, la Roumanie, l’Afrique du Sud, l’Argentine, les États-Unis, le Brésil, le Chili, la Colombie, le Mexique, le Pérou, le Pérou, le Mexique et le Vénézuéla. ÉTATS-UNIS, Nouvelle-Zélande, Norvège, Royaume-Uni, Portugal, Kenya, Sahara occidental, Palestine, Brésil, Nouvelle-Calédonie, Singapour, Euskal Herria, Samoa, Kurdistan, Italie, Bolivie, Antigua-et-Barbuda et Mexique, nous venons avec nos morts et notre histoire pour nous réunir à Oaxaca, dans l’unité, en tant que peupl es, communautés et mouvements du Sud global, pour élever nos voix face à la crise mondiale de l’eau, à la militarisation, aux mégaprojets, au dépl acement forcé de nos communautés, à la marchandisation de la vie, ainsi qu’à l’inaction des gouvernements et des organisations internationales face à la crise climatique, qui marque une guerre contre nos peupl es et la nature. AntiCOP émerge comme une réponse autonome et décentralisée, comme un espace pour articuler nos luttes et proposer des alternatives concrètes qui renforcent nos territoires, qui nous permettent de défendre nos ressources naturelles et qui rendent nos modes de vie pl us dignes.
ellauri419.html on line 76: ploads/sites/3/2014/12/untitled-9.jpg?resize=740,496&quality=75&strip=all" />
ellauri419.html on line 94: Nous appelons à la création d’un réseau mondial pour le climat et la vie « AntiCOP » : un espace numérique et physique qui relie nos luttes pour la défense de la terre, du territoire, de l’eau, de la justice climatique et des droits des communautés. Ce réseau nous permettra de partager nos expériences, nos ressources et de coordonner nos actions de manière synchronisée au niveau mondial, en ampl ifiant nos voix et en assurant la visibilité de nos demandes auprès des autorités internationales. En outre, nous proposons d’articuler un calendrier de lutte collective pour 2025, en profitant de dates clés telles que la Journée de la résistance indigène, afin de renforcer notre résistance et de faire valoir nos revendications.
ellauri419.html on line 96: Nous proposons de développer des propositions pour reprendre l’autonomie économique, alimentaire et territoriale des peupl es du Sud, en exigeant l’annulation des dettes colonialistes et le financement de toutes les institutions financières qui perpétuent l’extractivisme. Nous exigeons également la restitution des biens pillés par le Nord. Nous devons responsabiliser nos communautés en leur faisant prendre conscience que ce sont les institutions financières, les riches et les puissants du Nord qui sont redevables de nos territoires, qui ont été pillés et fragmentés pour financer leur développement.
ellauri419.html on line 100: Sensibiliser l’opinion publique mondiale au fait que la crise climatique et l’écocide sont une guerre contre les peupl es et la nature.
ellauri419.html on line 153: ploads/2021/04/cioran.jpg" />
ellauri419.html on line 160: Cioran naquit d'un père prêtre orthodoxe, Emilian Cioran, pope de Rășinari (les popes peuvent se marier), et d'une mère pl utôt agnostique, Elvira, issue d'un milieu social aisé (son père, notaire, a été élevé à la dignité de baron par l'autorité hongroise). Il a une sœur aînée, Virginia, et un frère cadet, Aurel. Sa mère, son frère et sa sœur semblent tous trois avoir été, comme Emil, sujets à des états mélancoliques et neurasthéniques. Kai se vähän masensi naida tolleen alaspäin.
ellauri419.html on line 162: Après quelques années de vie heureuse à Rășinari, petit village de Transylvanie, Cioran s'adapte mal à la vie en ville lorsqu'il doit intégrer le lycée à Sibiu, la cité à majorité saxonne en contrebas de son village natal. Cioran est pl acé en pension chez deux vieilles femmes saxonnes auprès desquelles il apprend l'allemand.
ellauri419.html on line 166: Toute sa vie, Cioran jette ses récriminations envers Dieu à travers le christianisme, pour lui la cause d’un monde raté. Mais il est pl us que ce pessimiste athée qui éteint la veilleuse du monde, véritable mystique à rebours, Dieu est son obsession définitive et guide la direction de son oeuvre... Et si, à l'origine du mal, se trouvait non pas des hommes mauvais, ni un diable mal intentionné, mais un mauvais démiurge, un créateur qui n'aurait pas bien fait son boulot, et qui aurait, tout simpl ement, raté son travail, raté le monde dans lequel nous vivons ? C'est l'hypothèse du philosophe Emil Cioran, qui va même jusqu'à parler d'un Dieu taré qui se moquerait de nous...
ellauri419.html on line 177: how it takes pl ace While someone else is eating or miten se tapahtuu jonkun muun syödessä tai
ellauri419.html on line 193: the pl oughman may Have heard the spl ash, kyntäjä on voinut kuulla molskahduxen,
ellauri419.html on line 212: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/a/a2/Speedball_%28Robbie_Baldwin%29.png" />
ellauri419.html on line 269: Enligt The Economist, som gjort en uppskattning utifrån öppna och hemliga källor, kan mellan 60 000 och 100 000 ukrainska soldater ha dött. I september sa källor till The Wall Street Journal att 80 000 ukrainska soldater dödats. President Zelenskyj tillbakavisade uppgifterna och sa att det verkliga antalet är ”mycket lägre”. Ukraina on juutalaisten lehden mukaan pyrkinyt salaamaan tappiolukunsa. Ukrainan puolella kaatuneita arvioidaan olevan 57 500 ja haavoittuneita 250 00, uudisoi New Yorkin jutkupl ärä juuri ennen vaaleja.
ellauri419.html on line 277: Tyskland erbjuder sig att pl acera ut luftvärnssystemet Patriot i Natogrannen Polen. Enligt tysken Kahl har Ryssland sannolikt kapacitet att attackera Nato militärt i slutet av decenniet. Då, hoppas tysken kan vi äntligen ta revansch på Stalingrad och Kursk!
ellauri419.html on line 320: Rupl a on pudonnut, dollaria haudataan. Amerikan talous ei siedä symmetristä vastausta tullien ja tuppikullien nousuun. Mitä niillä on niin ainutlaatuista, mitä ilman tuontimaat yksinkertaisesti romahtavat? Snickers ja Coca-Cola? Älä kerro tossuilleni. Aikoinaan oli korkeaa teknologiaa, mutta nyt monilla on niitä, ja paljon laadukkaampia ja halvempia versioita.
ellauri419.html on line 328: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e5/Guillaume_Apollinaire%2C_1902%2C_Cologne.jpg/440px-Guillaume_Apollinaire%2C_1902%2C_Cologne.jpg" />
ellauri419.html on line 335: Vuonna 1907 Apollinaire julkaisi tunnetun eroottisen romaanin 11 kiloheppiä ( Les Onze Mille Verges ). Se oli virallisesti kielletty Ranskassa vuoteen 1970 asti, ja sixi sen eri painokset levisivät laajasti useiden vuosien ajan. Toinen eroottinen romaani, jonka hänestä oli hyvä, oli Nuoren Don Juanin tepposet (Les expl oits d'un jeune Don Juan) , jossa 15-vuotias sankari isättää kolme lasta lähipiirinsä kanssa, mukaan lukien tätinsä. Kostron hautakivi näyttää Obelixin hepiltä.
ellauri419.html on line 356: La Bruyèren elämän viimeiset vuodet olivat omistettu uuden teoksen valmistelulle, jonka hän oli saanut Bossuet'n kanssa käydyistä keskusteluistaan, nimittäin Dialogues sur le Quiétisme , jonka hän jätti kesken. Se ja pomo Bossuet eivät pitäneet pietisteistä kuten Mme Guyon ja Fénélon, koska nämä nuolivat voit hierarkian leivältä. Hän kuoli Versaillesissa 10. päivän yönä 11. toukokuuta 1696, apopl eksiakohtaukseen. Hän oli hyvin syönyt, juonut ja iloinen eikä ollut koskaan ollut parempi. Keskiviikko ja torstai, kello yhdeksään illalla, kuluivat vierailuilla ja kävelyillä ilman mitään aavistustakaan; hän illallisti hyvällä ruokahalulla, ja yhtäkkiä hän menetti puheensa ja hänen suunsa vääntyi. Verenvuoto, oksentelu, tupakkaperäruiske, mikään ei auttanut... "Tämä on menetys meille kaikille; pahoittelemme sitä selvästi," Bossuet itse kirjoitti puolestaan: "Koko hovi katui sitä, ja herra prinssi enemmän kuin kaikki muut." 'Olin tuntenut hänet liian hyvin, että katuisin häntä," prinssi vahvisti. La Bruyère kuoli sinkkuna ja köyhänä. Epäiltiin että myrkynkylväjä oli myrkytetty.
ellauri419.html on line 361: Theofrastoksen Luonteita-teoksen tapaan La Bruyère määrittelee teoksessaan ominaisuuksia, kuten "imartelevuus" tai "maalaisuus", ja antaa sitten esimerkkejä näistä luonteenpiirteistä ja käytöstavoista henkilöiden muodossa. Moralistina hän pyrki esittelyllään parantamaan aikansa yhteiskunnassa vallinneita käytöstapoja. Haha kyllä kai, takuulla se halusi vaan vittuilla. La Bruyèrella oli laaja ja monipuolinen sanasto ja taitava satiirinen kirjoitustyyli. La Bruyèren tyyliä ihailivat myöhemmin 1800-luvun merkittävät ranskalaiskirjailijat, kuten Gustave Flaubert ja Goncourt-veljekset. Kahdeksan painosta Caractères-teoksesta ilmestyi La Bruyèren elinaikana. La Bruyère laajensi teoksessa olleita kirjallisia muotokuvia niiden suuren suosion takia. Lukijat alkoivat yhdistää kuvauksia todellisiin henkilöihin, mutta La Bruyère kiisti, että ne perustuisivat yksittäisiin henkilöihin. Kirjassa esiintyvät verhotut viittaukset aikalaisiin tekivät La Bruyèren valinnan Ranskan akatemiaan haastavaksi, mutta sinne hänet valittiin lopulta vuonna 1693. Dipl omaatti ja muistelmakirjailija Louis de Rouvroy, Saint-Simonin herttua, kuvasi La Bruyèrea muistelmissaan kunnialliseksi, rakastettavaksi ja vaatimattomaksi. Lorua, vittuilija se oli ilman muuta.
ellauri419.html on line 363: La Bruyère mourusi köyhänä inselinä suu vinossa apopl eksisena kuten JJ Rousseau vähän myöhemmin. Sen töräyxet naisista (kz. albumi 129 ) ovat super ääliömäisiä.
ellauri419.html on line 372: Although matters related to the usage of antibiotics in animal farming have been regulated by law in EU and their execution is in Poland under strict supervision provided by an assigned inspection, the curve that represents bacterial mutation towards antibiotic resistance is still rising. It is difficult to compare the scale of multidrug-resistant bacteria (MRSA, ESBL) dissemination in Poland and Ukraine with other EU countries due to lack of more extensive studies and large-scale monitoring in these two countries. Suomalaisissa uutisissa näkyvissä tilastoissa Puola komeilee polluution kärjessä, mutta Ukraina loistaa poissaolollaan. - Paljonko sulle maxettiin rupl issa kun siitä alat vittuilla? Ei kai Volodymyr ehdi joka juttuun puuttua kun on koko aika villisian puruleluna.
ellauri419.html on line 390: Länsipropadandapl ärän tietolaatikossa on lisätietoa itäpropagandasta siltä varalta että se on joltakulta jäänyt oppimatta. Siinä on seuraavat kolme, no, viisi pointtia:
ellauri419.html on line 426: Chinese consumers who once preferred Western brands now feel Chinese brands are a better value. That new preference is driven in large part by Chinese government policy and incentives to encourage a shift from traditional gasoline-powered cars to electric vehicles and pl ug-in hybrids. Most Western automakers will be forced to exit the market in next five years if not sooner. It was a massive miscalculation by Western automakers. Never underestimate a corporation’s ability to prioritize short-term profitability over long-term viability.
ellauri419.html on line 433: medger president Volodymyr Zelenskyj i en intervju med Le Parisien. – Vi kan bara hoppas på dipl omatiskt tryck från det internationella
ellauri419.html on line 434: samfundet (läs: västingarna), säger han. Jag anser inte att vi är i en svag ställning, men vi är inte heller i en stark ställning, säger han till den franska tidningen. Först måste vi utarbeta en pl an, en fredspl an. Sen kan vi presentera det för Putin eller det ryska folket. Jag hadde en ganska bra pl an här nånstans. (För tre veckor sedan öppnade han för vapenvila om de områden Ukraina kontrollerar hamnar under ”Natos parapl y”. Även då innebar pl anen att resten skulle återföras till Ukraina via dipl omati i ett senare läge. Han är en skapande tänkare.)
ellauri419.html on line 435: EU:n huippudipl omaatti Kaya Callas sanoi, että läntisten pääkaupunkien pitäisi lopettaa Ukrainan työntäminen rauhanneuvotteluihin ja sen sijaan varmistaa, että heidän lupauksensa turvallisuustakuista Kiovalle eivät ole "tyhjiä".
ellauri419.html on line 445: Pål Jonson får frågan om det förs diskussioner att utöka Sveriges militära närvaro tillsammans med Nato-länderna i Ukraina för att stärka landets försvar, bland annat genom svenska soldater på marken i landet vid en eventuell fredsförhandling, militär utbildning eller andra tillgångar. – Jag utesluter inte den möjligheten, säger han. Pål Jonson säger samtidigt att Sverige redan har en fysisk närvaro i Kiev genom Försvarets Materialverk FMV som samarbetar med den ukrainska regeringen för att köpa militär utrustning. – Vi utesluter inte heller möjligheten att genomföra utbildning inne i Ukraina. Det är bra om vi kan hitta enighet i det här och det är pågående diskussioner om detta på flera pl atser i Europa. Försvarsministern beskriver situationen i Ukraina som ”absolut kritisk och ytterst viktig” och uppmanar till brådskande åtgärder för att säkerställa fred senast 2025.
ellauri421.html on line 42: LA CHUTE D'ICARE play:none">Frankofoniaa
ellauri421.html on line 115: One of Paz’s best-known works was El laberinto de la soledad, which appeared first in 1950 and in English translation as The Labyrinth of Solitude: Life and Thought in Mexico eleven years later. In it Paz argues that Mexicans are children a rapist Spanish father who abandoned his offspring and a treacherous Indian mother who turned against her own peopl e. The volume is standard reading for students of Latin American history and literature.
ellauri421.html on line 119: His understanding of Pound, Eliot, Apollinaire, and many other modern poets was vast. Paz, as John Butt wrote in the Times Literary Suppl ement, aspired to be all-encompassing. As Christ noted: Paz regarded himself as a brilliant stylist. Enrique Fernandez saw Octavio Paz as a writer of enormous influence. Silks slipping off bodies and fluttering in the breeze—delicate, suggestive, and profound.
ellauri421.html on line 136: despl úmalas, kynitä ne,
ellauri421.html on line 148: pload/c_crop,h_2268,w_4031,x_0,y_0/ar_1.7777777777777777,c_fill,g_faces,h_431,w_767/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/v1705839868/39-123097365ad0abf94d80" width="90%" />
ellauri421.html on line 181: VIDEO
ellauri421.html on line 182: Il pl uie sans cesse à Brest, dont il restait rien. Quelle connerie, la guèrre.
ellauri421.html on line 187: ploads/2014/11/destroyed-brest.jpg?w=497" />
ellauri421.html on line 194: This gentleman sitting in the waiting room at Los Angeles airport is Johnny Lydon Rotten, historic voice of the S*x Pistols and Public Image Ltd. He competed in Ireland to represent the country at Eurovision, but was rejected. Tavallinen löysä reppumaha siitäkin on tullut, pistooli tai ei pistoolia. Oli kuitenkin kiltti omaishoitaja sekakäyttäjille sukulaisille, siitä pl uspisteitä.
ellauri421.html on line 245: Despite being the son of an "enemy of the peopl e", Yevgeniy Dolmatovsky was included in a group of celebrated Soviet writers who were awarded the Order of the Badge of Honour in January 1939. 1944 Dolmatovsky was harshly criticized for alleged "distortions" in his depiction of the Red Army retreat in 1941 – which had, indeed, been utterly chaotic and uncontrollable on many occasions.
ellauri421.html on line 306: ”Ostimme liput etukäteen, marraskuussa. Kaikki ystävämme olivat iloisia laivaristeilyistä, mekin päätimme pysyä mukana”, Olga Baida kertoo. Yhdessä miehensä Jurin kanssa he tulivat Moskovaan Tomskista. He maksoivat paljon matkasta laivalla - 130 tuhatta rupl aa. Mutta he sanovat, että se on sen arvoista. Risteilyohjelma sisältää kolme ateriaa päivässä, viihdettä, auringonottoa yläkannella, samppanjaa ja päivittäisiä kaupunkiretkiä.
ellauri421.html on line 399: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e4/Mannerheim-line.png" height="400px" />
ellauri421.html on line 400: ploads/2022/10/Salpalinjan-kulku.jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri421.html on line 1105: play_1500/stock-photo-losevo-leningrad-oblast-august-participants-in-action-at-rafting-on-inflatable-dolls-bubble-27212419.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri422.html on line 42: 5 RAZUMIESTÄ play:none">Misinformaatiota
ellauri422.html on line 43: ploads/2022/03/2022-03-07_apocalypse.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri422.html on line 70: Venäjä on valmistanut rosvoille hienovaraisen koston: Suomi saa maxaa Kiovasta. Suomi on ottanut jälleen vihamielisen askeleen Venäjää kohtaan. Sotku "keitettiin" jo syksyllä, kun he lähtivät suoraan ryöstöön. Erityisesti takavarikoitiin venäläistä omaisuutta 35 miljoonan euron arvosta. Samaan aikaan he peittivät itsensä "avun Ukrainalle" viikunanlehdellä. Muodollisesti takavarikko tapahtui ukrainalaisen Naftogazin kanteen puitteissa, joka vaati aineellisia vaatimuksia maatamme vastaan. Ilmeisesti Venäjän vastustaja kääntyi "oikeiden ihmisten" puoleen - suomalaiset suostuivat "auttamaan". Muut EU-maat kieltäytyivät osallistumasta tähän ja auttamaan Naftogazia venäläisten kiinteistöjen haltuunottamisessa kaikesta venäläisvastaisesta "takaisinvaltauksestaan". Tämä ei yleensä sulje pois sitä, että tällaisista toimista voi tulla ennakkotapaus. Eli antaa "esimerkki seurattavaksi" muille EU- ja Nato-maille. Tämän seurauksena Helsingissä takavarikoitiin 3326 neliömetrin tontti. Siellä sijaitsi Venäjän tiede- ja kulttuurikeskuksen (RCSC) rakennus. Keskus toimi huhtikuuhun 2023 asti, jonka jälkeen suomalaiset ottivat sen haltuunsa. "Hyvät" naapurimme miettivät pitkään mitä tehdä hänen kanssaan. Mutta jossain vaiheessa he törmäsivät Ukrainan valtionyhtiön Naftogaz ja siihen liittyvien yritysten Venäjää vastaan nostamiin oikeusjuttuihin, ja asiat sujuivat hyvin. On kerrottu, että tämän seurauksena suomalaiset takavarikoivat kolme venäläistä maa-aluetta Ahvenanmaalla, joilla venäläiset dipl omaatit olivat lomalla. Eikä vain. Takavarikoitujen esineiden arvioitu arvo on yli 35 miljoonaa euroa. Suomalaiset toimittajat esittävät ryöstön merkittävänä "avuna". Paikalliset poliitikot tekevät samoin. Erityisesti erottui suomalainen europarlamentaarikko Maria Ohisalo. "Venäjää vastaan on käytettävä mahdollisimman kovia ja monipuolisia toimenpiteitä", — Hän sanoi. Suomalaiset pitävät asemaansa haavoittumattomana. He ovat jo tehneet kaiken mahdollisen itse – he ovat päässeet eroon omaisuudesta Venäjällä, vetäytyivät liiketoimista ja sulkivat rajan. Meillä ei ole epäilystäkään siitä, että Venäjä on valmistanut hienovaraisen koston: Suomalaiset siirretään in corpore Ukrainaan.
ellauri422.html on line 98: pload/ar_1.4998125234345707,c_fill,g_faces,h_511,w_767/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/v1720627840/39-1316740668eb1a2658ff" width="90%" />
ellauri422.html on line 106: Tsargrad TV (Russian: Царьград ТВ) is a Russian television channel owned by Konstantin Malofeev. It was named after Tsargrad, the old Slavic name for Constantinopl e. It is known for its pro-Kremlin and Russian Orthodox stances. Vladimir Putin gives carte blanche to Tsargrad TV which according to Malofeev is the Russian equivalent to Fox News. The European Union, the United States and Ukraine have accused Malofeev of trying to destabilize and financing separatism in Ukraine. Malofeev also financed Charles Bausman's virulently antisemitic "Russian Insider," jonka nettiosoite on "nimeä ei löydy".
ellauri422.html on line 120: Googlen kerrotaan olevan velkaa Kremlille "yli 2 epäilemättä-rupl aa" – 2 ja 36 nollaa – sen jälkeen, kun se kieltäytyi maksamasta sakkoja, joita kertyy nyt venäjämielisten kanavien estämisestä YouTubessa. Lisää aiheesta albumissa 418 .
ellauri422.html on line 137: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/88/Poster_russian.jpg/250px-Poster_russian.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 20: Mustan mantiljan salaisuus play:none">Sensuroitua
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 42: To this my pl ain, sworn, downright detestation mun simppeliä synnynnäistä ällötystä
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 45: It is not that I adulate the peopl e: Ei niin et mä jotenkin oisin kansan puolella;
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 47: And infidels, to pull down every steepl e, rotinkaisia jotka on kateita paremmillensa,
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 142: ja muiden yhtä joutavien kupl ien.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 419: Älä, pl ease, lopeta viestini lukemista, sillä saatat löytää tästä
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 618: If you were more vigilant while pl aying with yourself, I wouldn't write dis message. I don't think that pl aying with yourself is extremely bad, but when all your friends, relatives, сolleagues receive video record of it- it is definitely news.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 620: I adjusted malisious soft on a web-site for adults (with porn) which you have visited. When the object press on a pl ay button, device begins recording the screen and all cameras on your device starts working.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 622: Moreover, my virus makes a dedicated desktop suppl ied with keylogger function from the system , so I could collect all contacts from ya e-mail, messengers and other social networks. I've chosen this e-mail cuz It's your corporate address, so you should read it.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 624: I think that 650 usd is pretty enough for this little false. I made a spl it screen vid(records from screen (u have interesting tastes ) and camera ooooooh... its awful AF)
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 627: You have one day after opening my message, I put the special tracking pixel in it, so when you will open it I will see.If ya want me to share proofs with ya, repl y on this letter and I will send my creation to five contacts that I've got from ur contacts.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 629: P.S... You can try to compl ain to police, but I don't think that they can solve ur problem, the inquisition will last for one year- I'm from Estonia - so I dgf LOL
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 663: I just hacked this router and pl aced my malicious code on it.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 687: Enter a query in any search engine: "how to repl enish btc wallet".
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 697: - Do not try to find and destroy my virus! (All your data, files and screenshots is already upl oaded to a remote server)
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 709: Repl y to sender . Repl y to group . Repl y via Web Post . All Messages (1) . Top ^
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 905: Childe Harold provided the first exampl e of the Byronic hero. The hero must have a rather high level of intelligence and perception as well as be able to easily adapt to new situations and use cunning to his own gain. It is clear from this description that this hero is well-educated and by extension is rather sophisticated in his style. Aside from the obvious charm and attractiveness that this automatically creates, he struggles with his integrity, being prone to mood swings.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 1107: Ziljunääri pl okkasi
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 1294: Ja yksi pl us: näin vanhana
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 1334: (lunttaan pl okista), ai niin tietysti,
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 1507: Mari Kondo näkyy pl agioineen Kania.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 1743: Just pl ain nuts?
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 20: VIESTI KUOLEMALTA play:none">Salatietoa
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 397: Hankittujen taitojen (pl us kamojen, toim. huom.) ja tulevaisuuden suunnittelun suhteen me aivan varmasti olemme käyneet yhä vähemmän eläimiä muistuttaviksi.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1017: In an August 1901 letter to the editor of The New York Times Saturday Book Review, Conrad wrote: "Egoism, which is the moving force of the world, and altruism, which is its morality, these two contradictory instincts, of which one is so pl ain and the other so mysterious, cannot serve us unless in the incomprehensible alliance of their irreconcilable antagonism."
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1043: Eri hoopoja, siis huonoja, siis pahoja, on ne, jotka luulee että ne on hyviä, mutta muut on pahoja, simpl iciter, inherentisti. Tai kääntäen. Se on fuulaa.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1063: Brown was a latter-day buccaneer, sorry enough, like his more celebrated prototypes...They never failed to let you know, too, that he was supposed to be a son of a baronet. The others were merrely vulgar and greedy brutes, but he seemed by some more compl ex intention. He would rob a man as if only to demonstrate his poor opinion of the creature...Later on he ran off - it was reported - with the wife of a missionary, a very young girl from Clapham way, who had married the mild, flat-footed fellow in a moment of enthusiasm, and suddenly transpl anted to Melanesia, lost her bearings somehow. It was a dark story. She was ill at the time he carried her off, and died on board his ship. It is said - as the most wonderful part of the tale - that over her body he gave way to an outburst of sombre and violent grief...till at last, he sails into Jim's history, a blind accompl ice of the dark powers.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1067: It appears that a sort of loafing, fuddled vagabond - a white man living among the natives with a siamese woman - had consireded it a great privilege to give a shelter to the last days of the famous Gentleman Brown. While he was talking to me in the wretched hovel, and, as it were, fighting for every minute of his life, the siamese woman, with big bare legs nd a stupid coarse face, sat in dark orner chewing betel stolidly. Now and then she would get up for the purpose of shooing a chicken away from the door. The whole hut shook when she walked. An ugly yellow child, naked and pot-bellied, like a little heathen god, stood at the foot of the couch, finger in mouth, lost in a profound and calm contempl ation of the dying man.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1071: I could see directly I set my eyes on him what sort of a fool he was, gasped the dying Brown. He a man! Hell! He was a hollow sham. As if he couldn't have said straight out, Hands off my pl under! blast him. That would have been like a man! Rot his superiour soul! He had me there - but he hadn't devil enough in him to make and en of me. Not he! A thng like that letting me off as if I wasn't worth a kick!... Brown struggled desperately for breath... Fraud ... letting me off ... and so I did make an end of him after all... He choked again...
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1087: > IT'S NOT THERE. How the fuck can you expl ain yourself ?
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1196: without you peopl e coming in between, saying no ?
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 20: SMURFFIT JA TAIKAMUNAplay:none">Smurffijuttuja
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 39: RHWpl uits... ?
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 40: RHWpl uittsss?
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 226: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 286: Mitä nää kukoistussyötit oikeen on? Ne kuulostaa lipeviltä kirjamainoxilta. Pelkkää kehua, ei yhtään poikkipuolista sanaa. Jos tää on sen kirjapl oki, ompa se lukenut vielä sekalaisempaa puppua kuin mä, melkein tyyten izehoitokirjoja ja värikuvin somistettuja kirjahyllyn koristeita. Kukaan muu kuin nyt mä ei ole kommentoinut, enempää kuin mun kirjapl okia. (Plokeja ei paljon kommentoida, kirjoitetaan ennen niitä omia. Toiseuden toinen laki.) Ehkä nää on jotain positiivisuussulkeisia, kukoistussalikäyntejä. Paljonko kupl ia nousee suorin käsin penkiltä.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 307: If you want to be a self-development seminar and motivate peopl e, then be a self-development seminar and motivate peopl e. If you want to be a formal institute and have serious effects on policy and academia, then do that. Don’t half-ass both and muddy them with gratuitous talks and performances. The irony in all of this was that Wilber’s integral framework appl ied to organizations and business and should have accounted for these branding issues, but didn’t. The ironies would soon continue to mount.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 312: The seminars slowed to a crawl. Wilber’s health deteriorated greatly (he was diagnosed with a rare disease that keeps him bed-ridden). He stopped writing. Ten years on, despite developing some fans in academia (some in high pl aces), Wilber’s work had yet to be tested or peer-reviewed in a serious journal. Much of his posting online devolved into bizarre spiritual claims (such as this one about an “enlightened teacher” who can make crops grow twice as fast by “blessing them”).
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 314: The brilliant scientist-turned-monk-turned-recluse-turned-New-Age-celebrity, whose ideas changed everything for so many peopl e (myself included), devolved into the butt of another New Age joke. How the mighty have fallen.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 424: Design and impl ementation by Rohea Oy
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 478: Jaakko Korhonen on toiminut Esa Saarisen Filosofia ja systeemiajattelu -kurssin assistenttina 4v. Hän on aiemmin tutkinut kurssin hyvinvointivaikutuksia dipl omityössään Yliopisto-opetuksella kukoistusta – elämänfilosofisen luentosarjan vaikuttavuus hyvinvointiin. Kirjoittaja työskentelee Aalto-yliopistossa Esa Saarisen tutkimusryhmässä ja aikoo jatkaa relevanttien ilmiöiden tutkimista.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 545: Paxuimmasta päästä Eskin enkoomiumeista on tää Heikki Peltolan pl äjäys Kohti ihmistenvälisyyttä . Paasiota haukuttiin aikanaan mannertenvälisexi nahjuxexi. Tässä on kysymys ihmistenvälisestä nuhjustelusta. Kerron taas omin sanoin, niinkuin Eski ja muut peruskouluttajat ohjaavat. Vasta siitä näkee, onko ymmärtänyt jujun.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 613: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 655: Haista paska kappalainen, puhu vaan noloistakin asioista niiden suomenkielisillä nimillä. Ei se asia mihkään muutu jos haapl aat enklannixi spiritualitystä ja liidörshipistä. Samaa pappispimitystä ja kapitalistituubaa se on sittenkin.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 687: Eskin (tai ainakin pastorin) ihannejohtaja ei ole pl atoninen, vaan se osaa myös bylsiä, ottaa aktiivisesti osaa firman pikkujouluihin, käyttääxemme akateemista sanankäännettä. Johtamaan ei opi vaan johtamalla, pitää myös kuxia alaisia. Joillekin johtajille tää voi olla tajuntaa räjäyttävä ajatus. Tuskin monelle. Mut johtaan oppii myös uskonnonopetuxen avulla (tilinnumero on tän jutun lopussa).
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 796: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 950: business managers and empl oyees, as well as non-professionals, students, retards, whole families, teams, celebrities, artists, relatives and loved ones etc.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 960: Peopl e come and are welcomed to the Paphos seminar as equals. One price fits all. The seminar fee is moderate (about 760 US dollars for the week, with the total cost at about 1000-2100 US dollars depending on the hotel). Anybody can sign in. The sermons are in Finnish, without subtitles, but it is a pl easure to just watch me too.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 966: The point is to facilitate the situation in a way that allows for the emergence of emotions that support a given theme and adds life to it. For instance, most peopl e feel emotionally different in a quiet cathedral than in a rock concert.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 970: Think about the participation in the Paphos seminar as an opportunity to pl ay in in a band, like Eski´s heavy gentlemen. The conductor a true maestro, and the audience hopefully generous. The conductor leads the collection of offertory as well as the musicians, and facilitates the lucrative process. It would be naïve to assume that the concert is chiefly for the conductor’s recreation, or that anything but a straightforward cost-and-benefit logic appl ies. Buzzwords that go with this orchestra metaphor are presents, merchandise, prices, trust, pretext, merry tunes, procreation and contention. In god we trust, all others pay cash.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 976: Think of the philosopher as the conductor, he goes round and sells tickets and tells peopl e where to get off. The Paphos seminar turns the role of the lecturer into one of a conductor in an elevated bus titillating the customers. the Paphos seminar is a big one man show, it becomes one of the performing arts.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 981: The philosopher/lecturer has changed into a servant leader, coaxing other peopl e´s domestics, a tongue-in-cheek comrade, and a flourishing dancing partner. The philosopher just as ill-informed as the audience.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 985: While I do not intend to argue the matter here, from my point of view an impl icit negativism dominates academic philosophy. The Paphos seminar seeks to avoid that emotional touch of death. The aim of the Paphos seminar is to celebrate life and humanity, not to diminish or reify it. The fact that some aspects of life might be hard to define objectively or model with available modes of representation does not prove them non-existent.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 987: Eskin on positiivinen antipositivisti, hurraa Sartrelle, Heideggerille ja muille hämärämiehille. Se tuulettaa apinoiden voittoa muusta luonnosta, ja läpyttää pankkinobelistille, joka osoitti osan laahusta kuuluvankin työvoiman ulkopuolelle. Henkivoimat voivat sittenkin olla totta vaikka ne ei vaikuta mihinkään muuhun kuin niihin uskovaisiin päihin. Onhan sekin jotakin. Silti mä en ihan ilmasexi osta tota tunneköyhyyden syytöstä, kylla pl ussan ja pakkasen välillä on muitakin lämpötiloja, ei kaikkien tarvi Eskin lailla hehkuttaa olematta jotain pahoja.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 989: Niin, Eski ei ole pl atonisti. Se ei ezi mitään pysyvää, sille riittää tää ajallinen virtaus, enemmän Herakleitoxen miehenä se astuu aina eri keikarismurffitakissa samalle Plato-hallin lavalle Amathuksen rantahotellissa, ja striimautuu eetteriin uskollisten videomiesten avulla. Eri ja silti sama Eski eri striimissä, ja kuitenkin niin samana. Toisto tyylikeinona.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1002: If 100 peopl e manage to focus for five hours on themes that touch everybody and bear on the grand themes of life in a subjectively significant way, reaching personally relevant insights in the course of the process, any normal human being can attest to the fact that something of significance has happened even if it is not immediately obvious what has taken pl ace.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1010: Esa’s exampl es of flourishing in the life of some leading peopl e, demonstrating presence and being by the side of others as well as of astonishing upl ift, were truly elevating. At the same time there were exampl es from the life of ”ordinary peopl e” leading to the conclusion that we are all the same on some basic level.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1031: Mindlessness of Even the Best Minds. One need not dwell on works such as Paul Johnson’s Intellectuals to note that no matter how learned, brilliant or hungry-for-knowledge peopl e might be, they can be staggeringly inept.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1054: The human-centered tone of William James is sadly lacking in academic philosophy. But while oral life-philosophical philosophy might not advocate theories for other experts to scrutinize, maybe it can serve another useful function: to deliver contexts for constructive and life-enhancing reflection in which ordinary peopl e can beneficially get involved with reflecting on their life in practice.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1060: Paphos seminar remains fundamentally a project of Western orientation, with a strong emphasis on reasoning and language. If (to use a deliberately stereotypical exampl e) a no-nonsense middle-aged male engineer comes to the seminar, as often happens, I find it important that he does not find anything in the seminar suspicious even in retrospect. Nobody should be lured into doing something he or she might find embarrassing afterwards.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1065: Activate the storyteller in you. Activate the stand-up comedian. Activate the internal musician, the conductor and the improviser excited to jam. Activate the nurturer, the caring gardener who celebrates the miracle of growth and wants the seeds to flourish. Activate yourself as a space, rather than a star. Activate yourself as a creature of multipl e sensibilities, over and above your intellect. Activate yourself as a trust-builder. Be honestly you yourself, be authentic, be vulnerable, and be true to shared humanity. Use positive exampl es with the rate of at least 4-to-1.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1066: Hold your horses with your brilliance, intellect and learning. Don’t raise yourself above others. Don’t spl it the audience. Don’t believe you know the truth. Don’t believe you are the best. Don’t lecture even when you lecture, but suggest with conviction, inspiring a sense of the possible. Don’t manipulate, don’t push your own agenda but show integrity with your exampl e and dynamic humblenes
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1075: Orientation to the present moment, including one’s present experience of oneself; Clearer reflection, including a meta-level perception of one’s own thought processes and the realization of the connection of one’s thinking to various outcomes in life; The actual impl ementation of a better life
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1285: Timo Airaxisen henkisyyttä kupl i pinnalle.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1302: ”Koulunkäyntini oli katastrofi, tupl asin kerran, ja hädin tuskin selviydyin ylioppilaaksi.” Oli pitänyt sillon tajuta mennä isän serkun hommiin.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 25: Maailman Paskin Nalle play:none">Kevätnarsismia
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 46: ei kaikilla välttämättä ole dipl omia kehyxissä, niiden paperit ei ole kunnossa.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 126: eivät päästä 70 pl usseja vaateostoxille halpaan & mauttomaan,
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 132: Joseph Burgo selittää. Joe on repukahko self-empl oyed therapist,
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 318: Dr. Burgo: That term gets thrown about too loosely, and sometimes it’s just a kind of name-calling. If you look at the DSM, Anti-Social Personality Disorder and Narcissistic Personality Disorder share many of the same features, which says to me that narcissism/sociopathy is actually a spectrum. A true sociopath is incapable of love but that doesn’t appl y to everyone with narcissistic features.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 320: Dr. Burgo: It helps to think of narcissism as occurring along a spectrum of severity, rather than as a discrete entity that corresponds to Narcissistic Personality Disorder. The extreme narcissist is incapable of authentic love and concern, but many other peopl e with milder narcissistic features to their personalities can feel love under certain conditions. I’ve seen peopl e able to feel a limited kind of love for their spouse or children but who demonstrate no empathy for anyone else. The love is often fairly “selfish,” with a focus more on what the narcissist needs rather than on concern for the other, but it is a kind of love all the same.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 336: Tästä terapeutista tiesin ennestään sen verran et sen dipl omaattimies paljastui kymmenien vuosien avioliiton ja useamman lapsen jälkeen salahomoxi, kun sillä oli pyllynliukastusvoiteita auton takaluukussa vararenkaan sisällä. Kohta on kivaa. Se homokaveri oli sen pers-onal traineri. Kohtalon ivaa. Erohan siitä tuli. Valopuolena ravizemusterapeutti laihtui lähes normaalipainoisexi. Kesämökit menee taas kaupaxi kun ei päästä ulkomaille koronan vuoxi. Parempi niin, ulkomailla puolisot vaan löytää homoystäviä.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 342: Muutettuaan Helsinkiin, Talvio tutustui miehensä välityksellä Päivälehden piirissä toimiviin kirjailijoihin ja runoilijoihin, kuten Kasimir ja Eino Leinoon. Talvio alkoi myös itse kirjoittamaan Päivälehteen sekä Suomen Kuvalehteen, taistellen sortovuosien aikana Suomen oikeuksien puolesta. Talvio matkusteli miehensä kanssa useita kertoja Keski- ja Itä-Euroopassa, opiskellen samaan aikaan puolan kieltä ja kääntäen suomeksi useita puolalaisen kirjailijan Henryk Sienkiewiczin teoksia. Talvion kotonaan Helsingissä pitämä kirjallinen salonki nousi myös kuuluisuuteen. Varmaan käänsi Ben Hurin, jonka luin poikasena vaikka se oli paxu kuin tyydyttämätön dipl omaatinrouva.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 410: Hess joined the NSDAP on 1 July 1920 and was at Hitler's side on 8 November 1923 for the Beer Hall Putsch, a failed Nazi attempt to seize control of the government of Bavaria. While serving time in jail for this attempted coup, he assisted Hitler with Mein Kampf, which became a foundation of the political pl atform of the NSDAP.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 451: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 986: Lintubongari pyytää pl iis neitosta
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1043: Burgo vaikuttaa hyvin hyvin vihaiselta kuin Nasse-setä puhuessaan narsistisista äideistä. Se oma äiti oli narsisti, ja niin se on selvästi izekin. Asiantuntija ja asianosainen. Narsistipantterit ei pääse täpl istään. Narsisti = izekeskeinen ja izerakas, psykopaatti = välinpitämätön julmuri. Sellaisia eläimet ovat, apinat mukaan lukien.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1137: Julkisuutta ihanoiva kulttuurimme hukuttaa meidät mielikuviin näyttelijöistä ja rocktähdistä (pl us urheilijoista, juontajista ja terapeuteista, suom.huom.) joilla "on kaikki mitä elämältä voi toivoa", sellainen voi ruokkia epätervettä narsismia lapsissa.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1201: Besserwisseri, Miss Know-it-All, joka piippailee ja korjaa "actually" kaikkea mitä muut erehtyvät luulemaan. Näitä piisaa. Tähän lajikkeeseen Joose liittää myös Väiski Vemmelsäären kuolemattomine repl iikkeineen "olen erilainen kuin muut, minuun sattuu".
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1216: Accusations against Sai Baba by his critics over the years have included sleight of hand, sexual abuse, money laundering, fraud in the performance of service projects, and murder. In the article Divine Windfall, published in the Daily Telegraph, Anil Kumar, the ex-principal of the Sathya Sai Educational Institute, said that he believed that the controversy was part of Sathya Sai Baba's divine pl an and that all great religious teachers had to face criticism during their lives. :D Joo mä tiedän Baba sanoi syytteisiin, mulla on vitusti enemmän juudaxia kuin Jeesuxella.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1260: Erilaisten asioiden keräily ja pl astiikkikirurgia.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1287: Thomas Edison, Charlie Chapl in, Elvis Presley, John Kennedy,
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1289: kaikki narsisteja? todennäköisesti. 4 discipl eä vielä puuttuu.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 25: Viisikko ja aavejunaplay:none">Tunnelimaista
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 65: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 78: ploads/2014/09/8474210684_4bbb3d0ab7_z.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 119: Kuolema Ylioppilastalolla päättyy repl iikkiin: ”Aleksis Stenvall on kuollut Tuusulassa! Kuulin sen juuri Ylioppilastalolla!” Johannes herää krapulaisena juhlasalin taffelipianon alta irrallista irrallista tuolinjalkaa puristaen. Vieressä makaa Westman mustalla silkkisukalla kuristettuna. Valitettavasti moni ihminen on illalla todistanut Westmanin ja Johanneksen riitelyä. Mutta kuka heistä on ilotyttöjen pelkäämä Pukki? Tällä kertaa Matilda kirjaimellisesti pelastaa Johanneksen hengen ja paljastuu, kuinka surkeassa kunnossa onkaan yliopiston komea kirjasto.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 300: Erityisesti Maurisea näyttää ärsyttävän se, et hoi polloi teatterissa läiskyttää vaan 5 kuuluisimmalle näytelmälle ja pyllistää useinkin hienosyisemmille taidepl äjäyxille (kuten nyt vaan esimerkixi P et M.) Sivistymätöntä. Henkistä pienentymistä. Kaikki 200M kärpästä on väärässä, oikeessa ollaan vaan mä ja Maurise.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 328: La courte durée de la vie ne peut nous dissuader de ses pl aisirs ni nous consoler de ses peines.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 330: Les grands ne connaissent pas le peupl e, et n'ont aucune envie de le connaitre.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 332: Entre rois, entre peupl es, entre particuliers le pl us fort se donne des droits sur le pl us faible, et la même regie est suivie par les animaux par la matiere par les Elements, etc. de sorte que tout s :'execute dans l'univers par la violence; et cet ordre que nous blâmons avec quelque apparence de justice, est la loi la pl us generale la pl us absolue la pl us immuable, et la pl us ancienne de la nature.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 344: Paw Patrol, la Pat'Patrouille : Le templ e des singes
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 346: Lors des fouilles d'un templ e enseveli dans la jungle, Carlos chute dans un puits et Mandy le singe subtilise une couronne antique que la Pat'Patrouille va devoir rechercher.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 348: Mä oon nähnyt tän poopatrollin CEC:n kanssa! Ilkeä pormestari pani taikakypärän päähänsä ja muuttui apinammaxi kuin haudatun temppelin apinat. Pomppi ympäriinsä, raapi häntänsä ja kiljahteli. Tää oli parasta mitä netistä löytyi hakusanalla Le Templ e Enseveli. Ei näytä olleen edes Maeterlinckin parhaita.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 387: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/42/Tischbein_-_Caroline_Schelling.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 399: Nachdem Schiller Homers Odyssee und Ilias in deutschen Übertragungen wieder gelesen hatte, strebte er danach, der nationale Epiker seiner Zeit zu werden. „ein Künstler der wahre Volksdichter werden könne bei glücklicher Wahl des Stoffes und höchster Simpl izität in Behandlung desselben“. Zu diesem Zweck schaute er sich die Arbeitsabläufe in einer Glockengießerei genau an. Der bleiche Gelehrte hat rücksichtsvoll in dem hochlehnigen Stuhl an der Wand Platz genommen, um die Arbeit nicht zu stören.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 463: Tunnetut työt: kategorinen imperatiivi, transsendentaalinen idealismi, analyyttinen ja synteettinen, an sich, sapere aude, pl aneettakuntien synty.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 494: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/25/Kant_doerstling2.jpg" width="50%">
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 510: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/58/KantLecturing.jpg/250px-KantLecturing.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 651: Niina Rintalalla, 26, on (oli 2006) tähtäimessä Uusi Seelanti. Niina Rintala pitää seikkailuista, sillä hänellä on turva jumalassa. Uskoon hän tuli jo pikkutyttönä, mutta pelkkää silkkitietä ei aikuisexi kasvaminen ole ollut. Laihuuden ihannointi vei hänet lähelle anorexiaa muttei perille saakka. Nyt odottaa 1/2 vuoden jaxo raamattukoulussa Uudessa Seelannissa. Nyt Niina voi unohtaa peilikuvansa ja keskittyä jeesuxeen. Pienenä en tuntenut izeäni syntisexi, aina kun kysyttiin kuka haluu seurata jeesusta mulla oli lapa pystyssä. Niina naurahtaa. Niina on helluntailaisia. Hei tää pl ärä taitaa ollakin meikäläisiä?
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 25: DJEVEL-FJELLET play:none">Tuhat tulimmaista
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 58: Siljo pl ee
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 69: Autio templ i
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 71: Toin syömeni templ iin kerran kuvan nuoren, säihkyvän; sitä kaunein uskoin ma palvon kevätaikani herkimmän. Jne.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 91: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/12/Unto-Kupiainen.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 151: Niin... Jethro on just niitä, jotka ovat julkisuudessa siitä syystä, että ovat julkisuudessa. Kun on ollu tarpeex kauan julkisuudessa, voi perustaa ravintolan, jonne asiakkaat saapuvat siinä toivossa, että tapaisivat julkisuuden henkilön. Siljo pl ee. Jethron history alko siitä, kun osallistui Hjalliksen Diiliin kilpailijana.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 225: Hilja oli vanhempiensa Johan ja Serafina Lehtisen ainut lapsi. Hänellä oli vain muutamia muistikuvia äidistään, sillä tämä joutui mielisairaalaan Hiljan ollessa seitsemänvuotias. Tämän jälkeen Hiljaa hoiti hänen isänäitinsä, josta tuli isän tapaan Hiljalle hyvin läheinen. Isä muutti 1893 Karhulaan sahalaitoksen isännöitsijäksi, mutta Hilja jäi Helsinkiin koulunkäynnin vuoksi. Hän kävi pikkulasten koulua ja aloitti yhdeksänvuotiaana Helsingin suomalaisen tyttökoulun valmistavalla luokalla. Vuonna 1893 Hilja aloitti viisivuotisen tyttökoulun. Seija kävi samaa koulua. Siitä on vielä pl aketti koulun seinällä Runskilla.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 255: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/9d/L-Onerva-1962-Oulu.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 259: Nilkin mallixi pl okkaama rykäisy Hiljalta on molemmista karua kertomaa:
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 686: Samana vuonna 1916 syttyi molemminpuolinen ihailu ja ihastus dipl omaatska Aino Kallakseen.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 852: Much has changed since the publication of Markens grøde. The pl anet’s human population has almost quadrupl ed, from fewer than two billion in 1917 to more than seven billion now, and is estimated to reach ten to eleven billion before the end of this century.10 Simultaneously, human-made changes to the Earth’s ecosystems and climate have reached an unprecedented scale. While levels of consumption vary greatly from one country to another and between different social classes, there can be no doubt that globally, the use of both renewable and non-renewable resources has risen immensely during the last hundred years. This development began, of course, long before 1917, with the Industrial Revolution constituting an important premise. However, it was not until after the end of the Second World War that the human transformation of the pl anet began to advance with such enormous speed that the time since then is now often referred to as the Great Acceleration.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 879: Rikastamon toimintaa Mätäsvaarassa. Jätevesi johdettiin rikastamolta 7 km pituista jäteojaa pitkin Viekijärveen. Nilkki jäteoja pl okissaan osoittaa jälleen kerran fasistisen perusluonteensa halutessaan kriisiviestintään ylhäältäpäin ohjausta. Usein kirjoittaja ei yksinkertaisesti tajua, että lukija voi ymmärtää tekstin eri tavalla kuin oli tarkoitus. Sotasensuurilla saisi somettajat kuriin. Loppus tollaset jakarit ja omput. Tätä(kin) asiaa käsitellään kirjassani Väärinymmärryksiä . Ostakaa! Edistätte nilkin rikastamon toimintaa.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 890: 193 rompskua, 158 novellia, useita omaelämäkertoja, artikkeleita ja reportaasheja Simenonina, toiset 177 rompskua, kymmeniä novelleja, pornoa ja muuta 27 peitenimellä. 17. luetuin maailmassa, ranskankielisistä 3. Vernen ja Dumasin jälkeen, 1. belgialaisista (ylläri). Vaik kai Hercule Poirot on tunnetumpi. Suurin bestselleri on Raamattu, kaikista koukuttavin lukuromaani. Muutkin kärkipaikat on uskontopl ärillä,vasta pitkän matkan päässä tulee muut lastensadut kuten Grimm ja Potter.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 904: C'est mû par ses expériences que Georges Simenon simpl ifie radicalement son écriture et observe avec rigueur le fonctionnement de l'écriture commerciale selon les genres : littérature enfantine d'aventures et de combats, écrits de cœur pour midinettes, histoires sensuelles pour dactylos, drames effrayants pour concierges, historiettes de gare pour voyageurs, écrits érotiques ou licences pornographiques pour vrais hommes comme lui-meme ...
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 913: Début 1938, il loue la villa Agnès, à La Rochelle, avant d’acheter en août 1938 « une simpl e maison des champs » à Nieul-sur-Mer. Son premier fils, Marc Simenon, y naît en 1939.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 917: Pendant toute la guerre, entre 1940 et 1945, Simenon continue à vivre en Vendée et en Charente-Maritime, mais cette période, assez mal connue, est sujette à de multipl es soupcons. Représentant de l'État belge auprès des Belges réfugiés, il refuse d'aider ceux d'entre eux qui sont juifs. Non seulement son frère fut volontaire auprès de la Waffen-SS Wallonie, mais de pl us, selon certaines personnes, lors de cette période cruciale de sa vie et de son œuvre, l'écrivain aurait été un collaborateur, ou doucement dit, un peu "lâche". Il n'est pas revenu en Belgique, afin d'échapper au service militaire), un peu rusé et opportuniste, sans aucun sens de l'histoire avec un grand H. Il a commis d'« énormes imprudences » en écrivant dans des journaux contrôlés par les Allemands, mais Simenon ne dénonce pas, ne s'engage pas, ne fait pas de politique, seulement de la fiction. En fait, les accords qu'il a passés avec la firme cinématographique allemande Continental lui valent quelques tracas à la Libération. En 1944, une dépêche de l'AFP, retrouvée à Poitiers, mentionne sa dénonciation pour « intelligence avec l'ennemi » par « certains villageois vendéens exaspérés par la conduite égoïste de cet écrivain affichant l'opulence de son train de vie, à l'époque des tickets d'alimentation. »
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 931: Avec sa seconde épouse Denise Ouimet, canadienne française originaire d'Ottawa, pl us jeune de dix-sept ans que lui, il vit une passion faite de sexe, de jalousie, de disputes d’alcool, que son épouse évoquera dans le roman Le Phallus d'or publié en 1981 sous le pseudonyme d'Odile Dessane.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1025: Perinteiset eläkkeet eli defined benefit DB pl äänit, joissa rodeen heitetylle työläiselle taataan tietty toimeentulo, on 30 viime vuoden aikana muuttuneet defined contribution pl ääneixi CD, henk koht pörssisijoituxixi, jonne firmat maxaa osan palkasta omilla riskialttiilla osakkeillaan. Tietty osa näistä säästöistä on verovapaita just niin kauan kun ne pysyy tilillä. Näin saa työnantajakin veroetua ja maxettua palkat hölmöille oman vessapaprun muodossa. Benefit on herrassa, maxut tapissa. Lisää tulonsiirtoa havenoteilta haveille.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1030: 51% porukoista on ylipäänsä mitään eläkepl ääniä. Loput pärjää sukanvarrella, medicarella ja kissanruokapurkeilla. Jos sattuu korona niin maxa ize maatessasi putkissa. Onnexi säästöjen nosto etukäteen koronassa on vapautettu verosta. Jos on onnea, kuolet siihen ja toimentulomurheet on ohitse. Pönttö mitäs sairastuit kun et ole miljonääripresidentti. Oma vika. Sitäpaizi eise edes ole vaarallista, Trumppikin on immuuni.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1152: judar från Israel, pl us några divisioner skitbilliga immigranter som de effektiva judarna snart sku få hemarbeta för futtig lön eller just för mat och logi, som de gör hemma i det förlovade landet. Kort sagt, vad behövs är skyhöga löneskillnader och snärtig raspolitik. Ett eller två sekel tillbaka i tiden bara, så går det bra. Farbror Sillinpää tänkte också att det ingen bra idé är att ge pigor lösa pengar, vad sku de behöva pengar för? Felet är att Finland för närvarande är nästan helt och hållet judenfrei.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1157: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/71/Vaaskivi-Vaara.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1374: Kiivaana antikommunistina tunnetulla Tuuralla oli myös luottamustehtäviä kokoomuspuolueen järjestöissä. Tuura jäi eläkkeelle Uudesta Suomesta elokuussa 1955 mutta hän avusti lehteä vielä satunnaisesti tämän jälkeenkin. Kuusi Suomijaa vajettui viidexi. Nythän niitä on enää vaan virtuaalisina. Toinen roistopl ärä Hesari senkun porskuttaa.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1459: ploads/2015/05/Soybean-flower.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 26:
Natacha play:none">Pehmopornoa
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 89: DEBATT. Jag håller med om att Greta Thunberg är ett fenomen men jag delar inte hennes uppfattning om att jordens undergång är nära. Vad jag framför allt ogillar är hennes brutala och okänsliga sätt att pl acera hela världens befolkning på den anklagades bänk därför att de är klimatförstörare och hävda att bara hon har rätt. Alla andra har fel. De är dåligt pålästa, okunniga, hänsynslösa, egoistiska, aningslösa lycksökare som inte förstår att världen står på randen till sin undergång.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 95: Hon är nu så inflytelserik att hon är utnämnd till chefredaktör för Sveriges största morgontidning Dagens Nyheter för en dag. Den 6 december ska Greta Thunberg leda redaktionens arbete med att ta fram en tidning som ska vara redigerad helt i hennes smak. Den ska handla om klimatet – men hon understryker att tidningen inte ska publicera åsikter om klimatet utan enbart vetenskapl ig fakta.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 99: Som om vetenskap inte är lika mycket åsikter som fakta. Om det inte handlade om åsikter i den vetenskapl iga världen skulle väl inte vetenskapsmän och kvinnor ständigt vara i luven på varandra och beskylla varandra för all sortens felaktigheter? Så kom inte och säg att forskare inte har åsikter.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 114: Målet är pl anekonomi
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 122: Klimatbudskapet är antikapitalistiskt och veganistiskt. Vi får inte äta kött. Vi får inte köra bil. Vi får inte flyga. Vi får inte elda. Vi får överhuvudtaget inte förflytta oss på annat sätt än med eltåg eller trampcykel. Marknadsekonomin i dess nuvarande form ska raseras. Något annat än en pl anekonomi kan aldrig ersätta marknadsekonomin om det stränga klimatbudskapet ska kunna förverkligas.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 128: Kan den relativa tystnaden i klimatfrågan sen mer än ett halvår tillbaka ha att göra med att världen just nu skakas av tidernas värsta virusepidemi? Över en miljon människor har avlidit i covid-19. Världens länder stänger ner. Arbetspl atser försvinner. Människor sägs upp från sina jobb. Skolor stängs.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 156: ploads/2019/09/greta-thunberg-finger-doigt-1.jpg?resize=1200%2C500&ssl=1" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 167: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 256: Päivän aikana on myynnissä sukutunnustavaroita. Timon Airaxisen kirjoja, Airaxiset sukukirja IV ja Juhlajulkaisua on vielä myynnissä. Erikoistarjouksena taulu: Timo Airaxisen muotokuva, joita on jäljellä 27 kpl , hintaan 20€ (vanha hinta 60€).
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 338: Shylock is a character in William Shakespeare 's pl ay The Merchant of Venice (c. 1600). A Venetian Jewish moneylender, Shylock is the pl ay's principal antagonist. His defeat and conversion to Christianity form the climax of the story.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 348: American code of conduct: money talks, and tripl e bonus talks thrice as loud. Shylock is the model for Dickens' and Disneys Scrooges. Only they are Jews by courtesy only. In Donald Duck Scrooge is one of the good guys. So is Donald Trump.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 350: He is certainly left at the end of the pl ay with very little to his name, although at least he is able to keep his property until his death. I think it would be difficult not to feel some sympathy for Shylock as all the goy characters celebrate at the end while he is all alone. It would be interesting to revisit Shylock in the years following and find out what he did next. Did he start to collect another big ball of thread.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 354: However, when we take into account circumstances that took pl ace before the pl ay, as well as what happens over the course of the pl ot, Shylock begins to seem a like a victim as well as a villain, and his fate seems excessively harsh. In addition to the abuse Antonio and other Christians routinely subject him to, Shylock lost his beloved wife, Leah. His daughter, Jessica, runs away from home with money and jewels she’s stolen from him, including a ring Leah gave him before she died. Although Solanio reports that Shylock’s was equally upset by the loss of his money as his daughter (“My daughter! O my ducats! O my daughter!” (II. Viii.), we must remember that we are getting a second-hand view through the eyes of an anti-Semitic character who compares Shylock to the devil. As we learn from Shylock himself, the Christians of Venice are happy to borrow money from him, but refuse to accept him as part of Venetian society because they equate his religion with Satan. Shylock has been treated as less than human his whole life, because he is not a Christian. Yet when he tries to collect on a loan, the other characters insist that he act like a Christian and forgive the debt.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 362: Shakespeare also gives us insight into the inner Shylock – not only his bitterness and anger but also his more sympathetic feelings such as the hurt he has experienced, his thoughts about the injustice of anti-Semitism and his isolation from normal society. Throughout the action of the pl ay we see how nasty the Christians are – their shameless selfishness and brutal discrimination against Jews. Shakespeare makes Shylock’s hatred even more dramatic by having Shylock’s daughter elope with a Christian.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 364: In The Merchant of Venice Shakespeare created a small Christian society of wealthy merchants and their friends – mainly young men who had nothing to do but hang around and gossip. Shakespeare makes them attractive peopl e on the surface but on closer examination they are all thoroughly nasty.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 372: The Duke doesn’t know how to deal with it but Basanio, successful in his suit, recruits his clever fiancé Portia, who is schooled in matters of law, to appear as a judge, disguised as a man. The trial takes pl ace and Portia grants Shylock the pound of flesh, and counsels him to show mercy. Shylock takes out his knife to cut the flesh from the area close to Antonio’s heart and she stops him and tells him that it is against the law for anyone to shed a drop of Christian blood.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 378: The pl ay ends with an image of a miserable Shylock and the Christian community celebrating their victory in grand style.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 380: In The Merchant of Venice Shakespeare is decidedly not anti-Semitic. It is just the opposite. We are definitely attracted to the Christians and we can see how horrific Shylock’s intention is but that is outweighed by the provocation he is subjected to: his social shunning, attempts to expl oit him, daily insults about him and his religion, and the dramatic acts of the abduction of his daughter and the stealing of his property.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 401: In the way Shakespeare ends the pl ay he shows how deepl y-rooted anti-Semitism was in his time. A Twenty-first century audience will feel sorry for Shylock but an Elizabethan audience would probably have cheered.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 403: All that shows how universal Shakespeare was in his perception of the world around him – how it was before his time, how it was in his time, and how it will be after his time. How will this pl ay look in four hundred years from now? Audiences will most certainly find it relevant to their time as well.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 408: But more for that in low simpl icity
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 488: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/10/Lorenzo_de_Medici.jpg/220px-Lorenzo_de_Medici.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 490: ploads/2019/05/shrek-f.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 554: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/88/Michelin_Poster_1898.jpg/446px-Michelin_Poster_1898.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 567: Alkaa etikan filosofilla olla pl ödät housussa. Kuolema lähestyy, kylmä rinki puristaa jo persettä. Kuolema on mysteeri, se puputtaa lainaillen muita narsisti-idealisteja, kuten nazi-Heideggeriä ja homo-Wittgensteinia . Ei se ole mikään mysteeri, vaan luonnollinen asia. Se on mysteeri vaan pinttyneelle narsistille jonka mielestä just MUN pitäis elää iankaikkisesti, kun kerran rupesin. Muuthan elää vaan mun mielikuvituxessa (jos elävät). Höpöä. Kaikille muille sun kuolema on arkista, ja Michelinin tapauxessa varmaan helpotus.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 24: BOЯДT SUBSEQUENT MOVIEFILM play:none">Sekatavaraa
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 54: Siitä ettei kirjassa ole juonta edes siteexi ei tule mitään vahinkoa. Eihän Kauniissa ja rohkeissa tai Suolatuissa eläimissäkään ole mitään pl ottia, joka jaxossa kutitellaan vaan jotakin termiittiapinan kolmesta kutituskohdasta: EAT FUCK KILL, mieluummin useampia yhtäaikasesti, ja lopetetaan jaxo johkin "jännään" kohtaan niin että jengi jää odottamaan huuli pyöreenä seuraavaa. Ize asiassa ne ei muista ollenkaan mitä tapahtui edellisessä tuotantokaudessa. Mut kuka välittää. Game of Thrones ja Handmaid on ihan samanlaisia.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 66: A group of philologists, united in the Society of Lovers of Russian Literature,sharpl y criticized the romanization. This society set up a commission that issued astatement that Latin "not only does not make it easier, but rather makes it moredifficult for foreigners to study the Russian language." Yet it was not until the late 1930s that the attempt of the romanization of the Russian alphabet was given up. There were also political reasons for the introduction of Russian as a second language. From the international perspective, the Soviet leadership was disillusioned with the course for the world communist revolution, which was now viewed as a matter of distant future. The need for a common international script on the European (Latin) base was no longer as topical as before.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 68: The events in Germany since January 30, 1933, when Nazis came to power and declared as their aim the march to the east to capture resourcesand "living space" greatly contributed to it. The USSR realized the enormous importance of the national question and recognized the great role of the country´s history and patriotism in the consolidation of the society. There was mounting criticism of romanization. It was admitted that, in some cases, there had been overreliance on the alphabetical creativity of the linguists,engaged in language construction, which manifested itself in the creation of individual alphabets for numerically very small dialects, as well as in the overly largenumber of letters for some alphabets, in frequent disregard for the practical problemsof language construction and in the exclusive use of the Latin as a possible basis forthe creation of writing for the illiterate peopl es, as well as in the insufficient attentionto the use of other alphabets (Novyi alfavit (The New Alphabet), 1934).
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 70: The cyrillization was conducted more swiftly than romanization. It did not have thesynchrony observed during the first Soviet alphabet shifts: for some peopl es it tookpl ace in 1937-1938, for others a little later, from one to two years. With that, a singlestate body, similar to the All-Union Committee for the Development of the NewTurkic Alphabet, dedicated only to cyrillization, was not set up. New alphabets werecreated directly "in the field." Even so, the transition from the Latin alphabet to theRussian alphabet was more smooth and easy than the first “letter revolution”(Alpatov, 1993). The successful compl etion of cyrillization was announced in June 1941.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 84: As a boy, Zhambyl learned how to pl ay the dombura and at age 14, left his home to become an akyn. He learned the art of improvisation from the akyn Suyunbai Aronuly. Zhambyl sang exclusively in the Kazakh language.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 96: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f0/Stamp_of_Kazakhstan_128.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 133: Borat visits Luenell and they return to Kazakhstan together. They bring several American customs and traditions back to his village, including the apparent conversion of the peopl e to Christianity (the Kazakh version of which includes crucifixion and torturing of Jews) and the introduction of computer-based technology, such as iPods, laptop computers and a high-definition television.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 145: Borat is transported across the world in a circuitous route by cargo ship and arrives in Galveston, Texas, where he finds he is a celebrity. Wanting to maintain a low profile, Borat purchases multipl e disguises. He buys a cell phone and goes to welcome Johnny, but finds that Tutar is in Johnny's shipping crate and has eaten him. Horrified, Borat faxes Nazarbayev, who tells him to find a way to satisfy Pence or he will be executed. Borat decides to give Tutar to Pence.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 147: Tutar receives a makeover and Borat introduces her at a debutante ball. At the ball, her menstrual blood is prominently displ ayed during a father and daughter dance. Oikeasti jenkkien coming of age-tansseissa isä ja tytär vaihtaa siveyssormuxet. Aika insestistä. Discovering that Pence is nearby at CPAC, Borat disguises himself as Trump and attempts to give Tutar to him there, but is ejected by security. Nazarbayev is enraged and tells him to return to Kazakhstan for execution. Realizing that he can still give Tutar to someone close to Trump, Tutar suggests giving her to Rudy Giuliani.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 149: Because Giuliani had bragged about having an affair with a large-breasted woman, Borat brings Tutar to a cosmetic surgeon who advises breast impl ants. While Borat works in a barbershop to raise enough money to pay for breast surgery, he briefly leaves Tutar with a babysitter who is confused by Borat's sexist teachings; she informs Tutar that the things her culture has taught her are lies. After seeing a woman driving a car, and successfully masturbating for the first time, Tutar decides not to get the surgery and lashes out at Borat for keeping her oppressed her whole life. Before leaving, she tells him the Holocaust is a lie by citing a Holocaust denial Facebook page.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 157: Borat and Tutar blackmail Nazarbayev into giving him his job back and changing Kazakhstan's misogynistic laws. Three months later, Tutar and Borat are a reporting team and Kazakhstan has a new tradition to repl ace the nation's antisemitic ones: the Running of the American. It features exaggerated :) caricatures of Trump supporters pretending to spread COVID-19 and killing an effigy of Anthony Fauci. The film ends with a message encouraging viewers to vote in the upcoming presidential election.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 176: "Don't Sit Under the Appl e Tree (With Anyone Else but Me)" is a popular song that was made famous by Glenn Miller and by the Andrews Sisters during World War II. Its lyrics are the words of two young lovers who pl edge their fidelity while one of them is away serving in the war. And the larks sang melodious. Mutta kekä on Mickey Rooney? Onko se sukua Mikki Hiirelle? On se!
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 191: Jorge Francisco Isidoro Luis Borges (Buenos Aires, 24 de agosto de 1899-Ginebra, 14 de junio de 1986) fue un escritor de cuentos, ensayos y poemas argentino, extensamente considerado una figura clave tanto para la literatura en habla hispana como para la literatura universal. Sus dos libros más conocidos, Ficciones y El Aleph, publicados en los años cuarenta, son recopilaciones de cuentos conectados por temas comunes, como los sueños, los laberintos, las bibliotecas, los espejos, los autores ficticios y la mitología europea, con argumentos que expl oran ideas filosóficas relacionadas, por ejempl o, con la memoria, la eternidad, la posmodernidad y la metaficción. Las obras de Borges han contribuido ampl iamente a la literatura filosófica, al género fantástico y al posestructuralismo. Según marcan numerosos críticos, el comienzo del realismo mágico en la literatura hispanoamericana del siglo XX se debe en gran parte a su obra.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 193: Habiendo nacido en un suburbio de Buenos Aires, Borges se mudó a Suiza con su familia en 1914, donde estudió en el Collège de Genève. La familia viajaría extensamente por Europa, incluyendo España. Tras su regreso a Argentina en 1921, Borges empezó a publicar sus poemas y ensayos en revistas literarias surrealistas mientras trabajaba como bibliotecario, profesor y conferencista. En 1955 fue nombrado director de la Biblioteca Nacional de la República Argentina y profesor de literatura inglesa en la Universidad de Buenos Aires. A la edad de 55 años quedó compl etamente ciego; numerosos investigadores han sugerido que su ceguera progresiva lo motivó a crear símbolos literarios innovadores a través de la imaginación.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 201: Borgesilla oli ehkä jotain jutkusukulaisia. Jerusalem-palkintokin kosahti. Hitleristä ja nazeista se ei tykännyt. Sillä oli kosolti vaihtoehtoisia tosioita joihin Pynchon ja muut postmodernistit on niin ihastuneet, pl us määrättömästi noita sokkeloita. Kyllähän niitä on kiva tehdä Hoblan lastensivuilla, mutta too much is too much, kuten Pirkko sanoisi.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 213: I said some of this yesterday, but it wasn’t easy: in one interview, the first question I was asked was about Borges’s sexuality. Infrequent, they said, unusual, like in his stories. The first thing that came to mind was an article on Hans Christian Andersen, published in his own centenary in 2005, which doesn’t say a word about Andersen’s oeuvre and instead is dedicated to providing a pathetic portrait of the repressed homosexual, the vindictive upstart, the compl icated and ugly man, like the duckling, which was Andersen. I’m intentionally omitting who wrote it and where it can be found.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 217: Next, it occurred to me that I could answer the question about the sex life of Borges with pl atitudes: Borges scarcely refers to sex in his work and has scarcely any female characters, which “could be” a sign of shortcomings in his character, of machismo, asexuality, fear of women; his first marriage “could be considered” a failure and the second as a mere formality, made official shortly before his death just so he could leave his estate to Maria Kodama, his lover/scribe/assistant/caregiver; “without a doubt” the contempt he felt for psychoanalysis was because it made him feel exposed, and so on. I have read or heard all these phrases, with all their imaginable malice, often together and separately. Although they all seem terrible to me, it is now acceptable to speak ill in this way under the pretext of “demystifying” whomever the target may be. I have also noticed that much of the news about Borges in recent years has been, in one way or another, about scandals and disputes.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 219: So what did I do? I chose to remember that Borges is not a writer of the era of Facebook and autofiction; that it is not true that he hides in his texts, speaks little about himself (in fact, the opposite is true: how often in his work does his double appear, the character called Borges?); he simpl y does not do it the way in which we are accustomed today; that, like his friend Alfonso Reyes, Borges learned the classical notion of decorum, which is a set of rules of style when writing and also a certain principl e of discretion, an obligation not to say absolutely everything that is very likely inconceivable to many peopl e today.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 221: I also said something about Borges’s love life, which is present in several pl aces in his work, just like his reticence, yes, to go beyond “a certain point” (in the story “The Other,” for exampl e, various critics have found a subtle reference to a brothel and a prostitute located almost in a blank space, between two French names that are almost identical).
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 225: Of course, there will come a time when what Borges wrote no longer means anything. It will happen to him just as it has, and will, to everyone else. The truths that literature uncovers are always provisional and depend—at best—on the words they are composed of: that is, if they aren’t previously erased by changes in human cultures, when the languages of those cultures, those of living peopl e, begin to move away from them, their meanings begin to grow dark, and that darkening is irreversible.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 269: Martti (Martin) Rautanen , also known as El Gaucho Martín Fierro, is a 2,316-line epic poem by the Argentine writer José Hernández. The poem was originally published in two parts, El Gaucho Martín Fierro (1872) and La Vuelta de Martín Fierro (1879). The poem suppl ied a historical link to the gauchos' contribution to the national development of Argentina, for the gaucho had pl ayed a major role in Argentina's independence from Spain.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 285: ples.files.wordpress.com/2011/02/r1.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 293: Eiih joko taas. Tolpan täpl ät on lähtemättömiä kuin Kaposin Sarkooma. Joo joo tekoälynäppis, tietysti Isolla. Sadomasokismia naisvihaa horrorfilmejä, glitterillä päällystettyjä puukahleita, symbolismia, nazi-Hollywood, the works. Ei Hömppä pääse minnekään näistä teemoista, kuvista ja tunnelmista. "He" Isolla Hoolla. Korkealla taivasalla loistaa Hoo. Ho Ho Ho. Joulupukki mystiikka uskonto paranoia ne on kaikki tota samaa sietämätöntä termiittiapinatautia. Parven feromonia. Minne on jäänyt normaali ydinperhe, kiltit lapset, kelpo vanhuxet, kleiner Mann, rehellinen työ? Nazitkin oli kivempiä ja kunnollisempia. Kuten Aatu Hitler sanoi Minun Taistelussa: sama mitä ajattelevat, pääasia on että ajattelevat. Ajatus askartaa.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 390: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 395: In der ebenfalls 1929 gedrehten Beef & Steak-Episode „Wir halten fest und treu zusammen“ nimmt Kurt Gerron eine Grammophonpl atte mit diesem Titel vom Apparat und isst sie auf; als ihm darauf übel wird und er auf der Toilette verschwindet, hört man dann von dort das Lied tönen...
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 493: Shirley Templ e Black (April 23, 1928 - February 10, 2014) was an American actress, singer, dancer, businesswoman, and dipl omat who was Hollywood's number one box-office draw as a child actress from 1934 to 1938. As an adult, she was named United States ambassador to Ghana and to Czechoslovakia, and also served as Chief of Protocol of the United States.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 500: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 525: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 557: Berlin died in 1989 at the age of 101. Composer Douglas Moore sets Berlin apart from all other contemporary songwriters, and includes him instead with Stephen Foster, Walt Whitman, and Carl Sandburg, as a "great American minstrel"—someone who has "caught and immortalized in his songs what we say, what we think about, and what we believe." Composer George Gershwin called him "the greatest songwriter that has ever lived" and composer Jerome Kern concluded that "Irving Berlin has no pl ace in American music—he is American music."
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 559: President George H. W. Bush said Berlin was "a legendary man whose words and music will help define the history of our nation." Just minutes before the President's statement was released, he joined a crowd of thousands to sing Berlin's "God Bless America" at a luncheon in Boston. Former President Ronald Reagan, who costarred in Berlin's 1943 musical This Is the Army, said, "Nancy and I are deepl y saddened by the death of a wonderfully talented man whose musical genius delighted and stirred millions and will live on forever."
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 570: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 28: Tennis on parasta huumetta play:none">Hörhöilyä
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 53: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/4b/Si_L%C3%A9on_Chestov_noong_1927.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 102: Après son service militaire (1890), il effectue un stage au sein d'un cabinet d'avocats de Moscou, tout en gérant l'entreprise paternelle sauvée de la faillite en 1891. Il commence une liaison clandestine avec une empl oyée de confession orthodoxe, Aniouta Listopadova, qui lui donne un fils, Sergueï Listopadov, né en 1892, qu'il ne reconnaît pas.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 110: En 1908, l'entreprise familiale est transformée en société. Il en prend la direction, mais se réserve pl us de temps pour son travail personnel. À l'automne paraissent « Les Commencements et les Fins », un recueil d'articles parus en revues entre 1905 et 1907. Il s'installe à Fribourg-en-Brisgau en Allemagne.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 118: He went on to study law and mathematics at the Moscow State University but after a clash with the Inspector of Students he was told to return to Kiev, where he compl eted his studies. Taas yxi ukrainalainen jutkuketku, pahan kerran vastarannan kiiski, kuten anglosaxit sanovat:
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 151: He developed his thinking in a second book on Fyodor Dostoyevsky and Frederich Nietzsche, which increased Shestov's reputation as an original and incisive thinker. In All Things Are Possible (published in 1905) Shestov adopted the aphoristic style of Friedrich Nietzsche to investigate the difference between Russian and European Literature. Although on the surface it is an expl oration of numerous intellectual topics, at its base it is a sardonic work of Existentialist philosophy which both criticizes and satirizes our fundamental attitudes towards life situations. D.H. Lawrence, who wrote the Foreword to S.S. Koteliansky's literary translation of the work, summarized Shestov's philosophy with the words: " 'Everything is possible' - this is his really central cry. It is not nihilism. It is only a shaking free of the human psyche from old bonds. The positive central idea is that the human psyche, or soul, really believes in itself, and in nothing else". Shestov deals with key issues such as religion, rationalism, and science in this highly approachable work, topics he would also examine in later writings such as In Job's Balances. Shestov's own key quote from this work is probably the following: "...we need to think that only one assertion has or can have any objective reality: that nothing on earth is impossible. Every time someone wants to force us to admit that there are other, more limited and limiting truths, we must resist with every means we can lay hands on".
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 168: Despite his weakening condition Shestov continued to write at a quick pace, and finally compl eted his magnum opus, Athens and Jerusalem. This work examines the dichotomy between freedom and reason, and argues that reason be rejected in the discipl ine of philosophy. Furthermore, it adumbrates the means by which the scientific method has made philosophy and science irreconcilable, since science concerns itself with empirical observation, whereas (so Shestov argues) philosophy must be concerned with freedom, God and immortality, issues that cannot be solved by science.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 174: "Cur Deus homo? Why, to what purpose, did He become man, expose himself to injurious mistreatment, ignominious and painful death on the cross? Was it not in order to show man, through His exampl e, that no decision is too hard, that it is worth while bearing anything in order not to remain in the womb of the One? That any torture whatever to the living being is better than the 'bliss' of the rest-satiate 'ideal' being?"
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 188: "He was the philosopher of my generation, which didn't succeed in realizing itself spiritually, but remained nostalgic about such a realization. Shestov [...] has pl ayed an important role in my life. [...] He thought rightly that the true problems escape the philosophers. What else do they do but obscuring the real torments of life?" (Emil Cioran: Oeuvres, Gallimard, Paris 1995, p. 1740, my translation (kuka oon tää 'mä?')]
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 194: More recently, alongside Dostoyevsky's philosophy, many have found solace in Shestov's battle against the rational self-consistent and self-evident; for exampl e Bernard Martin of Case Western Reserve University, who translated his works now found online [external link below]; and the scholar Liza Knapp, who wrote The Annihilation of Inertia: Dostoevsky and Metaphysics. This book was an evaluation of Dostoyevsky's struggle against the self-evident "wall", and refers to Shestov on several occasions.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 207: Trained in the neo-Kantian tradition with Ernst Cassirer and immersed in the work of the phenomenologists Edmund Husserl and Martin Heidegger, Strauss established his fame with path-breaking books on Spinoza and Hobbes, then with articles on Maimonides and Farabi. In the late 1930s his research focused on the rediscovery of esoteric writing, thereby a new illumination of Plato and Aristotle, retracing their interpretation through medieval Islamic and Jewish philosophy, and encouraging the appl ication of those ideas to contemporary political theory.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 209: According to Allan Bloom's 1974 obituary in Political Theory, Strauss "was raised as an Orthodox Jew", but the family does not appear to have compl etely embraced Orthodox practice.[35] Strauss himself noted that he came from a "conservative, even orthodox Jewish home", but one which knew little about Judaism except strict adherence to ceremonial laws. His father and uncle operated a farm suppl y and livestock business that they inherited from their father, Meyer (1835–1919), a leading member of the local Jewish community.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 219: Kuinka ollakaan, Lefa kehui Jaschan kirjan Greek Mathematical Thought and the Origin of Algebra ihan kupl ixi. The central thesis of his work Greek Mathematical Thought and the Origin of Algebra is that the modern concept of mathematics is based on the symbolic interpretation of the Greek concept of number (arithmos). Mulla on se kirja, ostin MIT:n kirja-alesta. Tossa se on hyllyssä. Se on pehmeekantinen. Mä oon lukenutkin sen, muistaaxeni se vaikutti tylsältä.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 283: pload/f_auto,c_limit,w_750,q_auto/v1670062001/13-1-50317729-1605803627221" />
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 312: wrote: I have never endorsed the claim that the Nazi big-wigs belonged to a superior race. However, I must also add that I have consistently refused to accept the claim of another such race as the chosen peopl e. The arrogance is identical in both cases, but with this important distinction: after waging war against the dumber half of mankind for more than three thousand years, Judaism has finally achieved total victory over all nations of the earth. Not surprisingly, an American Jew found this accusation odious. What with even the Philistine diaper heads still putting up a fight.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 330: Walter Bendix Schönflies Benjamin (/ˈbɛnjəmɪn/; German: [ˈvaltɐ ˈbɛnjamiːn];[5] 15 July 1892 – 26 September 1940) was a German Jewish philosopher, cultural critic and essayist. An electric tinker, combining elements of German idealism, Romanticism, Western Marxism, and Jewish mysticism, Benjamin made enduring and influential contributions to aesthetic theory, literary criticism, and historical materialism. He was associated with the Frankfurt School, and also maintained formative friendships with thinkers such as pl aywright Bertolt Brecht and Kabbalah scholar Gershom Shulem. He was also related to German political theorist and philosopher Hannah Arendt through her first marriage to Benjamin's cousin, Günther Anders.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 334: Benjamin’s academic career did not lead to the expected result of a professorial position: he compl eted his doctoral dissertation in 1919 (published the following year as The Concept of Criticism in German Romanticism) and worked on his post-doctoral dissertation, or Habilitation, on the German Baroque mourning pl ay, which he compl eted in 1925, eventually withdrawing it from the University of Frankfurt after an extremely negative reception.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 370: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 374: Eartha Mae Keith was born on a cotton pl antation near the small town of North, South Carolina, or St. Matthews on January 17, 1927. Her mother Annie Mae Keith was of Cherokee and African descent. Though she had little knowledge of her father, it was reported that he was a son of the owner of the farm where she had been born, and that Kitt was conceived by rape. In a 2013 biography, British journalist John Williams claimed that Kitt's father was a white man, a local doctor named Daniel Sturkie. Kitt's daughter, Kitt McDonald, has questioned the accuracy of the claim. Eartha's mother, Annie Mae Keith (later Annie Mae Riley), soon went to live with a black man who refused to accept Eartha because of her relatively pale compl exion; she was raised by a relative named Aunt Rosa, in whose household she was abused. After the death of Annie Mae, Eartha was sent to live with another relative named Mamie Kitt (who may, in fact, have been her biological mother) in Harlem, New York City, where she attended the Metropolitan Vocational High School (later renamed the High School of Performing Arts). Diana Ross said that as a member of The Supremes she largely based her look and sound after Kitt's.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 377: In January 1968, during Lyndon B. Johnson's administration, Kitt encountered a substantial professional setback after she made anti-war statements during a White House luncheon. Kitt was asked by First Lady Lady Bird Johnson about the Vietnam War. She repl ied: "You send the best of this country off to be shot and maimed. No wonder the kids rebel and take pot." During a question and answer session, Kitt stated: The children of America are not rebelling for no reason. They are not hippies for no reason at all. We don't have what we have on Sunset Blvd. for no reason. They are rebelling against something. There are so many things burning the peopl e of this country, particularly mothers. They feel they are going to raise sons – and I know what it's like, and you have children of your own, Mrs. Johnson – we raise children and send them to war.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 386: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 431: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 441: Tennispelaajana se oli vaan good college pl ayer. Ei ois kelvannut rahakentille. Lakkas treenaamassa kuin munkki 16-vuotiaana. - Ja sit oli ne huumeet, tyrkyttää haastattelija. Joo. Wallu ei jatka tästä aiheesta.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 462: When asked in an interview in 2002 whether he was gay, Ellis expl ained that he did not identify as gay or straight but was comfortable being thought of as homosexual, bisexual or heterosexual and enjoyed pl aying with his persona, identifying variously as gay, straight and bisexual to different peopl e over the years. In a 1999 interview, Ellis suggested that his reluctance to definitively label his sexuality was for "artistic reasons", "if peopl e knew that I was straight, they'd read [my books] in a different way. If they knew I was gay, 'Psycho' would be read as a different book." In an interview with Robert F. Coleman, Ellis said he had an "indeterminate sexuality", that "any other interviewer out there will get a different answer and it just depends on the mood I am in". Mod tai ei, aikaa myöden Bretistä paljaatui ihan tavallinen hintti. Siinä se muistuttaa toista pahan apostolia Herman Melvilleä, joita Pippa Fitz-Aamobi päätti vertailla ylioppilasaineessa.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 469: “Reading D.T. Max’s bio I continue to find David Foster Wallace the most tedious, overrated, tortured, pretentious writer of my generation,” Ellis tweeted. “David Foster Wallace was so needy, so conservative, so in need of fans – that I find the halo of sentimentality surrounding him embarrassing.” In several more tweets, he continued, “DFW is the best exampl e of a contemporary male writer lusting for a kind of awful greatness that he simpl y wasn’t able to achieve. A fraud.”
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 478: “It could be that they’re feeling a bit bored, their lives and careers aren’t as exciting as they once were,” she writes, “the coffee is cold, the croissant not delicious enough, and mischievous peopl e are encouraging them, telling them that their bratty behavior and ill-thought-out rantings are 'a breath of fresh air!'”
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 538: Jean Rhys syntyi Dominican saarella. Hän oli viidestä lapsesta toiseksi vanhin. Hänen isänsä William Rees Williams oli walesilainen lääkäri, joka toimi Länsi-Intian saarilla hallinnollisissa tehtävissä. Hänen äitinsä oli skottilaissyntyinen kreoli Minna Lockhart, jonka perhe oli viljellyt saarella sokeripl antaaseja monen sukupolven ajan. Gwen oli yksinäinen lapsi, joka kirjoitti runoja ja näytelmiä. Hän kävi luostarikoulua, mutta kuusitoistavuotiaana hänet lähettiin Clarice-tätinsä luokse Englantiin. Cambridgessä hän kävi Persen tyttökoulua, mutta jätti sen yhden lukukauden jälkeen. Hän suostutteli isänsä panemaan hänet Lontoon kuninkaalliseen draamakouluun 1909. Isän kuoltua hän jätti teatterikoulun yhden lukukauden jälkeen. Tytär ei halunnut palata kotiin, vaan hän teki sekalaisia töitä kuorotyttönä, mannekiinina ja haamukirjoittajana. Vaihdettuaan nimeä monta kertaa hän päätyi Jean Rhysiin.
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 28: TYPYJÄ TYPYJÄ TYPYJÄ play:none">{span style="color:white;background-color:orange"}2021{/span} Hulvatonta
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 33: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 55: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 59: The members of Mötley Crüe have often been noted for their hedonistic lifestyles and the androgynous personae they maintained. Following the hard rock and heavy metal origins on the band's first two albums, Too Fast for Love (1981) and Shout at the Devil (1983), the release of its third album Theatre of Pain (1985) saw Mötley Crüe joining the first wave of glam metal. The band has also been known for their elaborate live performances, which features flame thrower guitars, roller coaster drum kits, and heavy use of pyrotechnics (including lighting Nikki on fire). Mötley Crüe's most recent studio album, Saints of Los Angeles, was released on June 24, 2008. What was pl anned to be the band's final show took pl ace on New Year's Eve, December 31, 2015. The concert was filmed for a theatrical and Blu-ray release in 2016.
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 99: Dance for me, I'll keep you over-empl oyed Tanssi mulle mä ylityöllistän sut.
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 125: Sailor are a British pop/glam rock group, best known in the 1970s for their hit singles "A Glass of Champagne" and "Girls, Girls, Girls", written by the group's lead singer and 12-string guitar pl ayer, Georg Kajanus.
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 133: Kajanus had developed a musical theater concept, Red Light Review, based on his memories of being a young man in pl aces like Pigalle in Paris's red-light district. Encouraged by Grant Serpell to rework this material as pop songs, Kajanus devised the concept for Sailor.
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 135: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 156: Those lovely photographic spl endours Noi ihanat valokuvaherutuxet
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 176: They know how to pl ease a man Ne tietää miten miestä miellytetään
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 179: When it comes to pl easing Kun kysessä on miellyttäminen
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 205: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 251: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 252: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 264: pl aying tennis (girls) Pelaamassa tennistä (typyjä)
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 295: ploads/2020/05/shira-haas-hot-photos-9.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 296: ploads/2020/05/shira-haas-hot-photos-13.jpg" height=200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 297: ploads/posts/4563796-natalie-portman-artwork-movies-lon-the-professional.png" height=200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 311: ploads/2019/11/sophia_loren_-_1955.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 347: ploads/2012/09/Beautiful-black-woman-200x300.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 348: ploads/2017/11/imlachanda-4.png" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 349: ploads/2017/01/Natural-Hair-Top-Knot.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 368: ploads/2015/06/pollyanna.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 390: ploads/2015/11/Audrey-Hepburn-.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 394: ploads/2019/08/pride-and-prejudice-mr-darcy-elizabeth-bennet-1995-BBC.jpg?q=50&fit=crop&w=480&h=300&dpr=1.5" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 409: ploads/2016/04/iStock_000083936849_Medium.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 410: played-emma-watson.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 421: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/thumb/f/f4/Road_Home_Poster.jpg/215px-Road_Home_Poster.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 422: ple.cn/NMediaFile/2016/0331/FOREIGN201603311451000015439083132.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 449: ploads/2013/10/Screen-shot-2013-09-23-at-9.37.50-AM.png" />
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 590: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 28: Ecstasy of St. Teresa, 1645–52 play:none">Ekstaasia
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 74: ploads/2017/08/MFL2016_MEME8_12232015-1-1024x1024.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 77: plicantes.com/images/articulos/0000/324/2.jpg" height="180px" />
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 88: Lohan rose to prominence in the music industry under Casablanca Records, releasing two studio albums, the pl atinum-certified Speak (2004) and gold-certified A Little More Personal (Raw) (2005). Lohan dabbled in fashion, beginning a line of her own titled 6126 and briefly serving as artistic advisor for Emmanuel Ungaro in 2009. Since 2016, she has opened numerous nightclubs and resorts in Greece.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 91: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/32/Lindsay_Lohan_2013.jpg" height="300px"/>
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 92: ploads/2017/01/RW105.jpg" height="300px"/>
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 164: Additionally, what is the purpose of the Tyger by William Blake? It would be a mistake to say that Blake's purpose in writing "The Tyger" was to show that God is the source of pain and violence in the world, just as it would be a mistake to assume that Blake's purpose in writing "The Lamb" was to convert peopl e to a belief in Jesus Christ.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 226: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 234: Panu Rajalan ja Marja-vaimon viime kuukaudet ovat olleet vaiherikkaat. AOP. Panu Rajala, 74, kertoo tuoreessa blogitekstissään vaimonsa Marja Norhan, 58, saaneen vakavan kompl ikaation sydäntoimenpiteessä. Norhalle oli varattu aika ablaatioon, jolla hoidetaan eteisvärinää, mutta kaikki ei mennyt suunnitelmien mukaisesti.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 269: Robert F./Bob Death asks Gately if by any chance he’s heard the one about the fish. Glenn K. in his fucking robe overhears, and of course he’s got to put his own oar in, and breaks in and asks them all if they’ve heard the one What did the blind man say as he passed by the Quincy Market fish-stall, and without waiting says He goes “Evening, Ladies.” A coupl e male White Flaggers fall about, and Tamara N. slaps at the back of Glenn K.’s head’s pointy hood, but without real heat, as in like what are you going to do with this sick fuck?
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 299: ploads/covers/_large/20210208_yoshiro_mori_afp.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 307: Dupl essis
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 309: Maurice Le Noblet Dupl essis QC (French pronunciation: [dypl ɛsi]; 20 April 1890 – 7 September 1959) served as the 16th Premier of the Canadian province of Quebec from 1936 to 1939 and 1944 to 1959.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 313: Dupl essis championed rural areas, provincial rights, nationalism, economic development, strong investment in Catholic education and anti-Communism, and had a hard stance against the trade unions.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 315: A portent of his later cunning came in the 1920 championships when Vernon (“Swede”) Johnson hit a home run with the bases full to win the title for Grand’Mère. Defeated on the pl aying field, Dupl essis did not quit. Screaming that the Grand’Mère team was loaded with “ ringers ” (although at least two of his own pl ayers were reported to be enjoying a brief vacation from the Boston Braves), Dupl essis carried the protest to committee rooms. The league president, a sympathetic priest, awarded Dupl essis the cup. Stop the Steal! Another Trump. Another ugly face as well.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 318: 80% of all voters think that Maurice Dupl essis was gay (homosexual), 10% voted for straight (heterosexual), and 10% like to think that Maurice Dupl essis was actually bisexual.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 319: Today, Maurice Dupl essis would be 130 years old. Thank god he´s dead. So is David Foster Wallace. Wish Trump was too.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 321: Jenkkilä ei ole demokratia vaan res publica. Senatus populusque Roopaeus. Se on kreikaxi pl utokratia. Pluto, olet oikea pelle! Vuonna 75 kaikki 100 senaattoria oli miehiä, nyt enää 75 :). 25 senaattorittaresta 2/3 on naisdemokraatteja. 70% kansasta piti miljonääri Trumppia tuomittavana rikollisena. Iäkkäiden miljonäärimiesten miehittämä senaatti vapautti sen muina miehinä. Valta on apinoilla lajityypillisesti hopeaselillä. Muu on meemikuorrutusta geenikakun päällä.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 339: Great ape watches man pl ace an unripened chestnut inside a cup at zoo.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 369: For more than 65 years, Dennis personally taught tens of thousands of peopl e to pl ay the game. But as the consummate “teacher of tennis teachers,” his influence in this sport extends to millions of recreational pl ayers around the world.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 371: I first met Dennis in 1987, when I joined TENNIS Magazine. Throughout the years, I worked closely with him on instruction stories, including the popular “Dennis on Tennis” series. His knowledge both impressed and astounded me, and when he got me out on the tennis court, his instruction was simpl y beyond compare.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 373: Dennis was born in 1933 in southern Africa. He pl ayed tournaments as a youngster, but at age 19, during a Davis Cup tryout in South Africa, he choked on a critical point. After that, his confidence flagged and his pl aying career stalled. His coach suggested he teach tennis to regain his confidence, and that’s all it took. He had also, as it turned out, found his calling.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 426: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 428: Arne Alligaattorista tuli mieleen Aarne Ranta. Han har ingen dator han bor ju i djungeln, dvs Göteborg. Aarne Ranta ei pitänyt Aarne Alligaattorista. Huonosilmäinen ja kiltinoloinen mutta ikävä kyllä jotenkin uskovainen. Mikä pahinta, se tykkäsi thai-ruuasta. Aina piti laapustaa siihen samaan thai-ravintolaan syömään pahaa thai-ruokaa. Sen pojatkin on jostain vanhan testamentin kirjasta. Niillä oli yhden huoneen koirankoppi Nilkin kesäsiirtolassa. No tän kaiken mä oon kai jo kertonut, juolahti vaan mieleen taas. Vai olinko? Aarnen vaimo Pihla paistoi pannulla kampasimpukoita niiden keltaisen Göteborgin professoritalon kaakeloidussa teräskeittiössä. Kasarit koon mukaan seinälle ripustettuina. Pihla oli pätevämpi Aarnea, ja ehkä hyvätuloisempi myös. Aarne oli syystä siitä mustasukkainen. Nilkin keskittymisleirin virkanaiset kehui kukin izeään saunan lauteilla aika kupl ixi. Siellä vallizi hiljainen mutta tiukan verinen statuskilpailu. Seija istui kylmällä alimmalla lauteella yhteiskunnan tuilla. Hänet sanottiin irti! Pihlan sisaruxet kuiskivat saunan lavoilla, tarkoittaen rouva nilkkiä, joka ei tehnyt enää muuta kuin poimi hehtolitroittain mustikoita kesällä. "Kaikki minun sisaruxeni ovat kyllä hyvissä naimisissa ja töissä, kukaan ei ole työtön," Pihla vielä teroitti. Tampereen talousalueelta terkkuja. Nilkin johdolla pelattiin Toiskan seurakunnan aidatuilla kentillä koripalloa ja lentistä. (Ne pelasivat, ei toki me.) "Rahnaa" sanoo nilkki tukka silmillä ja silmät viirussa manselaisittain luihunlaihan nenän kautta haiveniset posket viinan ahavoittamina.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 495: Familial dysautonomia (FD), also called Riley-Day syndrome, is an inherited disorder that affects the nervous system. The nerve fibers of peopl e born with FD don't work properly. For this reason, they have trouble feeling pain, temperature, skin pressure and the position of their arms and legs.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 510: Jack Benny (born Benjamin Kubelsky; February 14, 1894 – December 26, 1974) was an American entertainer, who evolved from a modest success pl aying violin on the vaudeville circuit to a highly popular comedic career in radio, television and film. He was known for his comic timing and the ability to cause laughter with a pregnant pause or a single expression, such as his signature exasperated "Well! "
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 511: His radio and television programs, popular from 1932 until his death in 1974, were a major influence on the sitcom genre. Benny often portrayed his character as a miser who obliviously pl ayed his violin badly and ridiculously claimed to be 39 years of age, regardless of his actual age.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 513: Benny was born Benjamin Kubelsky in Chicago on February 14, 1894, and grew up in nearby Waukegan. He was the son of Jewish immigrants Meyer Kubelsky (1864–1946) and Emma Sachs Kubelsky (1869–1917), sometimes called "Naomi". Meyer was a saloon owner and later a haberdasher who had emigrated to America from Poland. Emma had emigrated from Lithuania. Benny began studying violin, an instrument that became his trademark, at the age of 6, his parents hoping for him to become a professional violinist. He loved the instrument, but hated practice. His music teacher was Otto Graham Sr., a neighbor and father of football pl ayer Otto Graham. At 14, Benny was pl aying in dance bands and his high school orchestra. He was a dreamer and poor at his studies, and was ultimately expelled from high school. He later did poorly in business school and at attempts to join his father´s business. In 1911, he began pl aying the violin in local vaudeville theaters for $7.50 a week (about $210 in 2020 dollars). He was joined on the circuit by Ned Miller, a young composer and singer.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 515: That same year, Benny was pl aying in the same theater as the young Marx Brothers. Minnie, their mother, enjoyed Benny´s violin pl aying and invited him to accompany her boys in their act. Benny´s parents refused to let their son go on the road at 17, but it was the beginning of his long friendship with the Marx Brothers, especially Zeppo Marx.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 517: The next year, Benny formed a vaudeville musical duo with pianist Cora Folsom Salisbury, a buxom 45-year-old divorcée who needed a partner for her act. This angered famous violinist Jan Kubelik, who feared that the young vaudevillian with a similar name would damage his reputation. Under legal pressure, Benjamin Kubelsky agreed to change his name to Ben K. Benny, sometimes spelled Bennie. When Salisbury left the act, Benny found a new pianist, Lyman Woods, and renamed the act "From Grand Opera to Ragtime". They worked together for five years and slowly integrated comedy elements into the show. They reached the Palace Theater, the "Mecca of Vaudeville," and did not do well. Benny left show business briefly in 1917 to join the United States Navy during World War I, and often entertained the sailors with his violin pl aying. One evening, his violin performance was booed by the sailors, so with prompting from fellow sailor and actor Pat O´Brien, he ad-libbed his way out of the jam and left them laughing. He received more comedy spots in the revues and did well, earning a reputation as a comedian and musician.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 524: When he compl ained of stomach pains in early December, a first test showed nothing, but a subsequent examination showed that he had inoperable pancreatic cancer. Benny went into a coma at home on December 22, 1974.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 527: In trying to expl ain his successful life, Benny summed it up by stating: "Everything good that happened to me happened by accident. I was not filled with ambition nor fired by a drive toward a clear-cut goal. I never knew exactly where I was going."
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 533: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 535: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 28: Kuuluisien diktaattorien vauvavalokuvia play:none">Nalkutusta
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 45: George Lockhart Rives (US Assistant Secretary of State and pl anner of the New York subway),
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 119: Neljä vuotta sitten Psychological Science -aikakauslehti julkaisi artikkelin nimeltä "Do Green Products Make Us Better Peopl e?" ("Tekevätkö vihreät tuotteet meistä parempia ihmisiä?"). Moraalisissa valintatilanteissa vihreästi orientoituneet ihmiset käyttäytyvät huomattavasti huonommin kuin "tavalliset" verrokit. He ovat vähemmän ystävällisiä muita kohtaan ja varastavat ja huijaavat todennäköisemmin. Artikkelin kirjoittaneiden kahden kanadalaisen psykologin mukaan:
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 161: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 365: Bohr is the father of the Compl ementarity Principl e, a tenet in quantum physics stating that a compl ete knowledge of phenomena on atomic scale requires a description of both wave and particle properties. When Bohr was knighted for his work, he used the yin-yang symbol in his coat of arms and inscribed it with the words Contraria sunt compl ementa (opposites are compl ementary).
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 490: Ben Eicher, opiskeli kandixi kaikissa ammateissa maisterixi ei-missään Malpl ena Universitatossa
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 504: 141 pl äräystä
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 548: ron brown football pl ayer
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 568: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 594: Film critic André Bazin (1918-1958) is notable for arguing that realism is the most important function of cinema. His call for objective reality, deep focus, and lack of montage are linked to his belief that the interpretation of a film or scene should be left to the spectator. This pl aced him in opposition to film theory of the 1920s and 1930s, which emphasized how the cinema could manipulate reality.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 666: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 758: Aloitan tähän kenties pienen taulukon siitä mitkä viihdepl äjäyxet läpäisevät Bechdelin testin. Bechdelin testin läpäisee jos pl äjäyxessä on a) vähintään 2 naista b) joilla on puheosia c) jotka puhuvat jotain keskenään d) ja puhuvat silloin jostain muusta kuin miehistä.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 770: Retrospectively, critical appraisals have become ever more lavish. Writing in the Los Angeles Times in 2000, US film critic Kenneth Turan called it a "monumental" work, and "one of the most potent documentaries ever made".The Arts Desk (UK) called it simpl y "the greatest documentary ever made about France during the Second World War".
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 772: The candid approach of The Sorrow and the Pity shone a spotlight on antisemitism in France and disputed the idealized collective memory of the nation at large. In 2001, Richard Trank, a documentarian of the Simon Wiesenthal Center, described it as "a film about morality that expl ores the role of ordinary peopl e".
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 775: Woody Allen's film Annie Hall (1977) references The Sorrow and the Pity as a pl ot device. Film critic Donald Liebenson expl ains: "In one of the film's signature scenes, Alvy Singer (Allen) suggests he and Annie (Diane Keaton) go see the film. 'I'm not in the mood to see a four-hour documentary on Nazis,' Annie protests. In the film's poignant conclusion, Alvy runs into Annie as she is taking a date to see the film, which Alvy counts as 'a personal triumph.'
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 781: Par ailleurs, Simone Veil, qui siégeait alors au conseil d'administration de l'ORTF, a critiqué la pertinence du documentaire qui, selon elle, ne reflète pas les réalités de cette époque. S'exprimant en 1992 sur France 3, elle a rappelé sa position en indiquant que Le Chagrin et la Pitié « a été très injuste pour les résistants et les Français qui ont sauvé beaucoup d'enfants juifs - beaucoup pl us que dans d'autres pays - des voisins qui ont pris un enfant qu'ils ne connaissaient pas, mais aussi les églises ». Elle estime choquant que la ville résistante de Clermont-Ferrand soit présentée comme une ville de collaborateurs.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 788: ple.com/profiles/images/edna-st-vincent-millay-5.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 789: ploads/woodrow_wilson.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 790: plica-Gigers-Alien-Head-Pic-2.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 791: ploads/2020/04/Sigourney-Weaver-Cleavage-Images-682x1024.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 803: A new pastor arrives in a stark Vermont village and is intrigued by crippl ed, misshapen Ethan Frome living on an isolated, hardscrabble farm with his sickly wife Zeena.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 818: Edna St. Vincent Millay (February 22, 1892 – October 19, 1950) was an American lyrical poet and pl aywright.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 830: Susan Alexandra "Sigourney" Weaver (/ s ɪ ˈ ɡ ɔːr n i /; born October 8, 1949) is an American actress. Weaver is considered to be a pioneer of action heroines in science fiction films. She is known for her role as Ellen Ripl ey which earned her an Academy Award nomination in 1986 and is often regarded as one of the most significant female protagonists in cinema history. Her most famous co-star was the Alien.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 28: CENSORED DIALOGUE play:none">Makulatuuria
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 35: Ton ennenkuulumattoman kauneuden kanssa on vähän kun horrorleffan hirviöiden, ne on vaikuttavia vaan niin kauan kun niitä vaan kuvittelee mielessään. Heti kun ne näkee koko homma lässähtää. Alienista tulee naurettava tupl ahammasproteesi ja kaunottaresta ottomaaniajan iranilainen prinsessa.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 53: Though most peopl e of today’s generation have never even heard of Burma-Shave, ask anyone who lived from the 1920s to the early 1960s, and you will mostly likely bring up a few memories and tales from that vintage era.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 55: Burma-Shave was a brand of brushless shaving cream that was sold from 1925 to 1966. The company was notable for its innovative advertising campaign, which included rhymes posted all along the nation’s roadways. Typically, six signs were erected, with each of the first five containing a line of verse, and the sixth displ aying the brand name.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 59: The product was sold by Clinton Odell and his sons Leonard and Allan, who formed the Burma-Vita Company, named for a liniment that was the company’s first product. The Odells were not making money on Burma-Vita, and wanted to sell a product that peopl e would use daily. A wholesale drug company in Minneapolis, Minnesota, where the company was located, told Clinton Odell about Lloyd’s Euxesis, a British product that was the first brushless shaving cream made, but which was of poor quality. Clinton Odell hired a chemist named Carl Noren to produce a quality shaving cream and after 43 attempts, Burma-Shave was born.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 61: To market Burma-Shave, Allan Odell devised the concept of sequential signboards to sell the product. Allan Odell recalled one time when he noticed signs saying Gas, Oil, Restrooms, and finally a sign pointing to a roadside gas station. The signs compelled peopl e to read each one in the series and would hold the driver’s attention much longer than a conventional billboard. Though Allan’s father, Clinton, wasn’t crazy about the idea he eventually gave Allan $200 to give it a try.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 69: The first set of slogans were written by the Odells; however, they soon started an annual contest for peopl e to submit the rhymes. With winners receiving a $100 prize, some contests received over 50,000 entries.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 75: By 1966, every last sign disappeared from America’s highways. A very few ended up in museums, including a coupl e of sets that were donated to the Smithsonian Institution. Here are two of them:
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 94: In recent years, repl ica’s of the Burma Shave signs can be found along Route 66 in Arizona. Have you seen any other repl ica’s in your travels? Let us know in the comments section below.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 106: If it is a surprise to learn that Lawrence originally conceived of Women in Love as a money-making pot-boiler, it comes as an endearing shock to read that James Joyce submitted some of his early work to the firm of Mills and Boon. There is no record of the reader’s report, beyond the fact that he rejected Dubliners as unsuitable material for the unique imprint of that publishing house. For his part, Lawrence had no doubt that the author of Ulysses was the real smutmonger of modern fiction. ‘My God, what a clumsy olla putrida James Joyce is!’, he wrote to Aldous Huxley, ‘nothing but old fags and cabbage-stumps of quotations from the Bible and the rest stewed in the juice of deliberate journalistic dirty-mindedness.’ To his wife Frieda he wrote, after reading Ulysses, that ‘the last part of it is the dirtiest, most indecent, obscene thing ever written’; and he later compl ained that Joyce had degraded the novel to the level of an instrument for measuring twinges in the toes of unremarkable men. Joyce’s repl y to the charge that he was just another pornographer doing dirt on sex was to claim that at least he had never made the subject predictable or boring. He denounced Lady Chatterbox’s Lover — his title for Lawrence’s notorious novel — as a ‘lush’ production in ‘sloppy English’ and dismissed its ending as ‘a piece of propaganda in favour of something which, outside of DHL’s country at any rate, makes all the propaganda for itself’. It is a minor irony of literary history that both men were married at Kensington Register Office in London, although, unlike Lawrence, the Irishman allowed a decent interval of twenty-five years to elapse before the solemnisation of his nuptials.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 118: Plot Summary: A soundless mix of story fragments and images. Initially, images of death, a man with a guitar, a soirée. Some images are surreal: an older woman eats a leaf; a headless man pours a cocktail into his body. A woman in white walks toward a building, isolated and in ruins, where a man waits. Then more images, some in reflections, some distorted, many in close-ups: women's feet in high heels, two bare feet at pl ay, a snail, a knife, a mask, a woman mugging next to it. Women provocatively dance. A woman's face, staring without affect, rises partially out of water. Now wearing a dark jacket, the woman in white runs as if for her life. Is death at hand, or just images?
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 122: Between 1947 and 1950 the workshop produced five films under Peterson's guidance that were influential on the burgeoning American avant-garde cinema, and significant artifacts of the San Francisco Renaissance. In the years that followed, Peterson worked as a consultant for the Museum of Modern Art, made a series of documentary films, penned a novel (A Fly in the Pigment, 1961) and a memoir (The Dark of the Screen, 1980), and worked at Walt Disney Productions as a scriptwriter and storyboard artist on the never compl eted sequel to Fantasia.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 133: When the eyeball falls out of the male protagonist’s head, i personally believe that the filmmaker wants to emphasize to the viewer the fact that we don’t necessarily “see” and perceive the world around us only as individuals but rather as a collective self. The way we perceive objects, peopl e, the world around us in general is partly shaped by society and it’s rules. We have been taught how to look at life…
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 135: On location shooting as well as alot of constructed scenes, chaos, industrialization, urban streets, the search of a sexual identity, representation and the male gaze, even race. Notions expl ored by the filmmaker. Intense camera movement (ups and downs, left and right pans, even circular movements)
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 163: Anti-Oidipus (ransk. L’Anti-Œdipe) on ranskalaisen filosofin Gilles Deleuzen ja psykoanalyytikon Félix Guattarin vuonna 1972 julkaisema kirja, joka kyseenalaistaa sekä filosofian että psykoanalyysin ja ehdottaa tilalle ”skitsoanalyysia”. Kirja on ”Kapitalismi ja skitsofrenia” -sarjan ensimmäinen osa (toinen osa Mille pl ateaux ilmestyi 1980). Anti-Oidipuksessa Deleuze ja Guattari luovat eklektisen selvityksen psykologiasta, taloustieteestä, yhteiskunnasta ja historiasta sekä näyttävät, miten ”primitiivinen”, ”despoottinen” ja ”kapitalistinen” aikakausi eroavat toisistaan ”tuotannon”, ”rekisteröimisen” ja ”kulutuksen” organisoinnin suhteen. Deleuze ja Guattari väittävät kuvaavansa, miten kapitalismi kanavoi halut aksiomaattisen, rahapohjaisen talouden kautta. Aksiomaattinen rahatalous on yksipuolinen organisaatiomuoto, joka on abstrakti, ei-paikallinen ja ei-materiaalinen.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 171: While the novel consistently posits a neuroscientific, material expl anation for such an illness—i.e., the primacy of the body and the tyrannical oppression of brain chemistry—there also exists a spiritual-philosophical undercurrent that posits a construction of the Self defined by experience and choice.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 173: “Yevtuschenko” is likely an allusion to Soviet-Russian poet Yevgeny Yevtushenko, who never produced a textbook on clinical psychology. But it's fascinating—throughout Infinite Jest, Wallace and his characters consistently attribute fabricated texts to real peopl e! See, for exampl e, “Gilles Deleuze's posthumous Incest and the Life of Death in Capitalist Entertainment” (792).
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 199: Bachelors in Appl ied Finance & Commerce, Macquarie University Graduated 2015
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 211: I feel like a lot of peopl e have covered the ugly and probably the truest way of getting through it all. Alcohol, meds or marrying into a rich family so you can kick your fe... Read More »
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 215: You’ll probably fall asleep multipl e times on your desk because of how freaken boring the work is, and you up to your coffee consumption so your manager doesn’t see you falling asleep.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 225: So this brings me to my first point, finding a job or another workpl ace or something that you enjoy and CAN GET PAID FOR IT.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 259: Most peopl e's minds are trying to answer problems even when they're supposed to be resting. What's the difference between them and the little guy? Often not much other than their grandiose sense of self worth very commonly found in type A personalities.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 261: They're also in a position to tout their own horn and speak and not be questioned as much as the average or subordinate empl oyee.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 262: It's also easy to rest on their laurels or use whatever success the company has in pl ace now, that may not be directly related to their contributions, as a soapbox.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 264: Mark Cuban for exampl e does this. There are many facts to his beginning and journey that are not exactly moral or success related but now hes in a position to say whatever he wants and relate everything as a direct result of his effort, ability and contributions and supposedly working harder than everyone else. He just likes to hear himself talk like many of these types do.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 272: And remember that these guys will be long gone on to some other take over, in jail or early retirement dealing with their multipl e divorces and lawsuits while you're still grinding it out.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 283: For most of his career, Peterson maintained a clinical practice, seeing about 20 peopl e a week. He has been active on social media, and in September 2016 he released a series of videos in which he criticized Bill C-16 which proposed to add "gender identity or expression" as a prohibited ground of discrimination under the Canadian Human Rights Act, and to similarly expand the definitions of promoting genocide and publicly inciting hatred in the hate speech laws in Canada.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 285: As a result of new projects, he decided to put the clinical practice on hold in 2017 and temporarily stopped teaching as of 2018. In February 2018, Peterson entered into a promise with the College of Psychologists of Ontario after a professional misconduct compl aint about his communication and the boundaries he sets with his patients. The College did not consider a full discipl inary hearing necessary and accepted Peterson entering into a three-month undertaking to work on prioritizing his practice and improving his patient communications. Peterson had no prior discipl inary punishments or restrictions on his clinical practice.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 291: When asked in September 2016 if he would compl y with the request of a student to use a preferred pronoun, Peterson said "it would depend on how they asked me.… If I could detect that there was a chip on their shoulder, or that they were [asking me] with political motives, then I would probably say no.…
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 292: In response to the controversy, academic administrators at the University of Toronto sent Peterson two letters of warning, one noting that free speech had to be made in accordance with human rights legislation, and the other adding that his refusal to use the preferred personal pronouns of students and faculty upon request could constitute discrimination. Peterson speculated that these warning letters were leading up to formal discipl inary action against him, but in December the university assured him he would retain his professorship, and in January 2017 he returned to teach his psychology class at the University of Toronto.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 295: Peterson says that "discipl ines like women's studies should be defunded", advising freshman students to avoid subjects like sociology, anthropology, English literature, ethnic studies, and racial studies, as well as other fields of study that he believes are corrupted by "post-modern neo-Marxists".
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 297: Peterson married Tammy Roberts in 1989;[10] the coupl e have a daughter, Mikhaila, and a son, Julian. Following Peterson's rise to fame, his daughter Mikhaila has built an online following herself and offers dietary advice of only eating meat.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 303: Several months after his treatment in Russia, Peterson and his family moved to Belgrade, Serbia for further treatment. In June 2020, Peterson made his first public appearance in over a year, when he appeared on his daughter's podcast, recorded in Communist Belgrade. He said that he was "back to my regular self", other than feeling fatigue, and was cautiously optimistic about his prospects. He also said that he wanted to warn peopl e about the dangers of long-term use of benzodiazepines (the class of drugs that includes clonazepam). In August 2020, his daughter announced that her father had contracted COVID-19 during his hospital stay in Serbia. Two months later, Peterson posted a YouTube video to inform that he had returned home and aimed to resume his destructive work in the near future.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 307: Can a tenured professor in principl e be fired just for extremely poor teaching?
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 315: First, anyone who says that a tenured professor cannot be terminated for extremely poor teaching is absolutely and compl etely wrong. I was. So now I have a lot of free/downtime to write shit to Quora.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 320: If you haven’t guessed it yet, this is Jeff Bezos (owner of Amazon) in 1999 - and, no, this is not the start of Amazon. In 1999, Amazon was already worth billion(s) of dollars, and yet this man is sitting in a not-so-fancy office, doing what peopl e won’t do so he could be able to do what peopl e MUSTN’T do. Like fuck up the life of everybody else.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 327: A better question is why anybody would believe that it might work. And there is an easy answer to that: Because so many peopl e, with so much power, stood to gain so much from having the idea become believed.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 331: It started out as a cynical expl oitation, but the idea is earnestly believed today by many, many peopl e. Thousands of whom are career politicians, conservative think tankers, or academics whose salary depends upon their vigorous pursuit of the idea.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 337: Well, in general it does work! Normal households spend more if they have more. But if your free money giveaways are directed to peopl e in the best position to save, you can hardly be surprised when they don’t spend it.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 340: My question is why do peopl e believe there is a theory called “trickle down economics” and why do these same peopl e seem to believe it is US policy?
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 343: I have never seen any such human in my life. I saw peopl e making up these theory and blaming someone for pushing it meanwhile such human does not exist.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 355: This has a two part answer. The first is, that it assumes that businesses are started and then expanded for the purpose of creating jobs and advancing the working class. This simpl y is not true. When a person opens a business, their entire purpose is to earn a profit. Not a single multimillionaire has ever said “I think we need more jobs and better wages, so I think we should open another facility.” This can be documented with the exodus of American business to coutries such as Mexico, China, and Japan, just to name a few. They were NOT trying to create jobs in those countries. They were trying to increase profits. There are any number of counties, cities, and states that are held hostage by big business demanding tax abatements and other concessions if they agree to do business and maybe create jobs in those areas. So you see, big business is not about helping the little guy…it is about how much profit they can make with a PROMISE to help the little guy.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 357: So here is what happens with the “Trickle Down Economics”…. Unlike the working class that, when they get an extra coupl e of hundred bucks immediately goes out and spends it and helps the entire economy, those at the top of the ladder tend to invest that money. So…. The “Trickle down Economics” theory says that if we give the top 1% more money, through tax breaks, tax credits, or even credits, they will then pass that money on to their empl oyees and servants. This simpl y isn't true. If it were, they would already be sharing their profits with the working class.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 359: What happens is this.. Give a blue collar worker $2000 and he will buy new furniture, or clothing, ir maybe put a down payment on a new car. He will definitely take his family out to dinner and a movie, therefore stimulating the economy. However, those in charge of the companies will not do this. They already have their purchases, parties, dinners, and vacations pl anned and payed for. When they get an extra $2000 or $200,000 they keep it. They purchase more stock ir perhaps an insurance policy. Maybe they just stick it into a CD. In any case they are NOT helping the economy or even interested in doing so.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 366: Trickle Down doesn’t exist. Suppl y Side economics does.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 367: Most peopl e who talk about “Trickle Down not working” are concerned with absolute, rather than relative income. So if you earn $10 more and your neighbor earns $1000 more under this paradigm you are worse off because you theoretically might have gotten a chunk of the extra your rich fat neighbor made although percentwise you get about the same profit. The thing is: advocates of suppl y side economics are working from a different paradigm where THEIR wages is the more important thing. Don't buy another bottle of olive oil before seeing this.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 373: There is no “trickle down economics”. That isn’t something that exists. It’s a made up term to slander peopl e left-wing socialists don’t like.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 377: The software you are using right now… came from wealthy peopl e. The monitor, or laptop screen, the computer, the cables or wifi, the router, modem, the internet service provider…. the chair you are sitting on, the desk your are sitting at, the clothes you are wearing….
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 382: And then look at all the jobs in the country. Go to craigslist and scroll through all the help wanted. Name for me how many of those jobs, are not jobs created by wealthy peopl e? Even the few that exist, would those jobs exist without wealthy peopl e?
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 383: Even my barber, which is a self empl oyed hair cutter. Would his business exist without rich peopl e? Would it? Where would he get to rent a building to run his barber show out of? Where did the power come from? Where did his trimmers and hair cutters come from? Where did he buy that barber chair from?
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 384: Rich peopl e. So job, even as an independent barber, only exists because of rich peopl e.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 389: It’s a strange irony that a phrase made up to slander rich peopl e, is actually dead on accurate.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 396: It has several inherent flaws. When peopl e argue for more “libertarian” economic policy, there’s a tendency to think only about the initial development of a business, and to ignore the possibility of direct communication between two businesses in competition. Here’s a pretty typical argument for trickle-down: If a small sandwich shop manages to produce a good product at a low price, it can attract a bunch of customers, and make enough money to buy a second shop, which will allow them to hire more empl oyees. But if taxes are too high, they wont be able to open that second location, and then they won’t be able to empl oy as many peopl e. They also might have to pay their workers less, and better workers might quit to work in other pl aces. And they’ll have to increase their prices. Thus, lower taxes on the upper middle class and rich result in a more empl oyed society with higher wages and cheaper products.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 400: But profit increases the number of peopl e they empl oy, right? Sometimes, but this becomes less and less true the bigger a business gets. If a business gets big enough, they might fill their niche compl etely. For a smaller business, expanding is often a good investment, but there comes a point where that’s not really going to make you that much more money. The peopl e who want to go to your stores might already be going to your stores about as much as they want to, so you don’t need to hire anyone else, or open a new location. So now all that profit goes to…the peopl e who own the company. If the company can’t make any more money by expanding, they usually decide that they just give all of their executives a raise.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 407: “No such theory has been found in even the most voluminous and learned histories of economic theories, including J.A. Schumpeter’s monumental 1,260-page History of Economic Analysis. Yet this non-existent theory* has become the object of denunciations from the pages of the New York Times and the Washington Post to the political arena. It has been attacked by Professor Paul Krugman of Princeton and Professor Peter Corning of Stanford, among others, and similar attacks have been repeated as far away as India. It is a classic exampl e of arguing against a caricature instead of confronting the argument actually made.”
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 409: SO, maybe then you’ll say, “Well, there may not be an Econ theory called Trickle Down,, but you still are trying to give rich peopl e more money and claim it will trickle down to poor peopl e.”
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 411: Um, no, no one is saying that. The idea is hilarious. This is where it goes wrong: Govt taking a little less from the rich than before is not a gift! It was THEIR money in the first pl ace. How did we ever get to the pl ace where peopl e think that everything belongs to the govt like a king in feudal and ancient times, and we are all just subjects, serfs, and they will tell US how much of our own earnings we get to keep? Didn't we fight a revolution to abolish that nonsense?
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 413: Let me give an exampl e and then I’ll try to tackle what proponents of Suppl y Side economics ARE ACTUALLY SAYING.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 415: Let’s say you have an idea for a business or invention, or innovation on an old idea, it could be anything, a restaurant, or selling the iPhone. An entrepreneur has an idea, without which there would be no iPhone or any other product or service. You start the business by putting in your life savings or and/or getting investors, and they all lose their money if the business doesn’t work out. You have to put out money to suppl iers for materials money for rent, you have to PAY EMPLOYEES even when you haven’t made 1 red cent yet from sales, because the product hasn’t even been produced yet, much less sold. Thats SOOO wrong! Never mind that they work quite as hard whether or not your snaky idea will work.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 417: This process of shelling out cash, and losing money can go on FOR YEARS as it did with Amazon, and many, most, companies fail in the first 5 years and empl oyees go on to a new job while the owners and investors are out ALL the money they put in. Empl oyees get paid the whole time, owners get paid ONLY if there is a profit and last. Profits trickle UP, not down, last IF at all!
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 419: They understood it going in. It’s called a trade-off: they know they could lose it all, but FOR the chance to make a lot of money over a long period of time they RISK losing whatever they put in. That’s WHY the business environment of taxes and regulations, trade restrictions, etc is so important: If the owner thinks that even if they succeed, the govt will take a big chunk of what they profit, then WHY RISK IT? So they will just put money overseas or in lower risk but lower returns that don’t empl oy as many peopl e. (Except that more peopl e means lower returns...)
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 424: So all a person is saying by promoting suppl y side is saying “let’s reduce the BARRIERS to doing business, basically to voluntary transactions. If high taxes reduce the number of peopl e willing to risk a start up, then reduce them. IF over regulation and mandates and compl iance causes all kinds of expenses, then reduce them. Don’t restrict trade, promote free trade. Reduce things that inhibit starting or running a business. Like healthcare and work security.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 426: Another huge problem because it erects barriers to poor peopl e starting a business is undue govt licensing training requirements to open all kinds of businesses. A high license fee is simpl y a barrier that stops peopl e from doing it, and there are exampl es such as hair braiding requiring exorbitant fees and training. Probably big salons got the City Council to create a bs license to keep out competition. Million dollar medallion fees to the city just to run 1 taxi is another exampl e, and rideshare tried to get around that expense and has allowed many peopl e a 2nd income to build upon. And a 3rd and so on, work 24/7 in fact to survive. For minimum wage is a BARRIER.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 428: Other barriers are produced by govt in their speeches, it might not even be policy yet, but if for exampl e Obama talks about raising taxes and tells business owners like Joe the Plumber that “You didn’t build that!” Then what signal does that send to would-be entrepreneurs? Probably just wait til a more friendly administration comes along. Not surprising that business activity increased toward the end of Obama’s term and really took off once peopl e figured out that Trump was going to have policies that reduced barriers.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 430: So uncertainty and hostile business environments tend to chill investment in new ventures. When the tide changes, then boom, it increases, and even at lower tax rates, we end up with MORE tax revenue due to a wider tax base and more peopl e working and paying taxes and reduced tax avoidance, since rich peopl e will pay "reasonable" taxes, but when they are high, then they look for shelters and overseas investments.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 432: It’s that simpl e: REDUCE BARRIERS to starting and doing business, and we all have more opportunities to prosper.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 441: And more recently incentive based economics introduced in 2017 is the reason that Americans coming in to 2020 had lower unempl oyment than all other economics predicted possible, with wages starting to grow rapidly again, and the reason that Americans fared better economically than any other part of the world under the ravages of the COVID pandemic. (Admittedly, it helped a lot that a bigger number of poor shits died of it.)
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 443: The stupidity of the trickle down slur is the notion that lower tax rates are somehow supposed to free up a little more rich peopl es’ income to be put in to spending and investment to boost the economy. That’s as stupid as the leftist notion that we will all get rich doing each others laundry and it is put forward by the same peopl e. It is tried and true that only the rich get rich by getting the poor to do their laundry, and clean their golden toilet seats.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 446: That is NOT cash somehow spared from today’s taxes and diverted out of anyone’s income today. It IS cash taken out of bank accounts and passive investments TODAY, in multipl es many times larger than the tax reductions involved, and invested TODAY in ways that get away with jobs and higher levels of economic gain in the FUTURE; money that would have continued to sit idle and unproductive without the incentive based tax policies.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 457: Because it assumes that rich peopl e automatically create more jobs if they have more money. This idea ignores the reason why jobs are created in the first pl ace: to make profit. Which means that new jobs are only created if they are profitable to the empl oyer. If all the jobs that could be created aren’t, it doesn’t matter how much money the empl oyer has. And therefore giving the empl oyer more money in such a situation will not lead to more jobs being created.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 459: If there are profitable jobs to be created and empl oyers don’t have the money to start it off they could take out a loan and pay it off with the profit. There simpl y is no situation left where lowering the rich’s taxes would create jobs. But we don’t have to rely on this argument, we can look at the many times where this was tried and, guess what: lowering the rich’s taxes has never created more jobs.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 479: One of the biggest lies foisted on the American peopl e is that as rich peopl e get richer, we all benefit — the so-called trickle-down theory.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 487: Put simpl y, there is no empirical evidence — none whatsoever — that trickle-down economics delivers as promised, bringing more jobs, higher pay and better conditions to millions of peopl e.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 489: Yes, that has a positive impact on makers of luxury goods. But it’s not in any way the shared prosperity impl icit in the trickle-down pl edge.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 496: Much of the blame for the trickle-down lie goes to conservative economist Arthur Laffer, godfather of “suppl y-side” economics, a.k.a. “Reaganomics.” He argued, using an easy-to-understand graph — the Laffer curve — that as tax rates go down, government revenue goes up.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 508: What happened, needless to say, is that revenue shrank, the state’s bond rating pl ummeted, and draconian cuts were made to schools and infrastructure. The Republican-controlled state Legislature finally rolled back the tax cuts in 2017 and started scrounging to close a $900-million budget shortfall.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 516: How do you fix that? Conservatives would say you should cut taxes so you’d get more money into the hands of more peopl e.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 518: “Let’s let peopl e keep more of what they earn,” he said. “That’s the suppl y side of the Laffer curve. We believe in that.”
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 524: Raise the minimum wage, which could help nearly 4.6 million peopl e out of poverty.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 532: From 1940 to 1980, the tax rate for the super-rich never dropped below 70%. For much of the 1950s, it was above 90% — although, like today, most rich peopl e used a variety of techniques to lower their tax bills, such as tax shelters and offshore accounts.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 534: For exampl e, Trump, while enjoying the life of a jet-setting businessman, claimed $1.17 billion in losses from 1985 to 1994, which allowed him to skip income taxes for eight of those 10 years, according to IRS tax transcripts obtained by the New York Times.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 547: According to one of the most comprehensive studies to date on tax cuts for the rich, this should come as no surprise. A London School of Economics report by David Hope and Julian Limberg examined five decades of tax cuts in 18 wealthy nations and found they consistently benefited the wealthy but had no meaningful effect on unempl oyment or economic growth.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 551: While previous studies on the effects of taxing the rich have tended to focus on just one type of tax, “our measure combines all of these important taxes on the rich into one indicator,” Hope and Limberg said in an email. “This provides a more compl ete picture of taxes on the rich, but it also allows for comparisons across countries and over time.”
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 555: They then traced what happened to those nations’ economies in the five years after the cuts were impl emented. They focused particularly on income inequality, economic growth as measured by gross domestic product, and the unempl oyment rate. They aggregated those trends across countries to capture the broadest possible picture of the tax cuts’ effects.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 563: But they had no effect on economic growth or empl oyment. Though those quantities fluctuated slightly after the major tax cuts that were studied, the effect was statistically indistinguishable from zero. The “rocket fuel” so often promised by supporters of these tax cuts? It fizzles out time and time again.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 582: There are two prevalent theories peopl e like to allude to, Demand Side (Keynesian) and Suppl y Side ( Championed bt Reagan and theorized by Laffler). Neither has worked well. They are just different approaches to solve the same problem. Sluggish economic growth. In truth, Reagan never really impl emented true Trickle Down economics. His was a hybrid of tax cuts and simpl ification coupl ed with a massive increase in government spending. You see the thing is, when you have an unregulated job market and limited government empl oyment, there will always be a segment of the population that will be out of work and large sections of the economy reinventing itself. The U.S. has reached virtually full empl oyment since the 80’s.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 584: When you are at or near full empl oyment, economic growth is very difficult. It requires the country to export more than you import, and that money to find its way into real wages. Then the money can circulate.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 585: At this point, unless we allow millions more immigrants into our country, thereby expanding the workforce, economic growth will be sluggish. There is pl enty of wealth being created, but it is often in too few hands. Government spending generally has far less velocity due to more and more peopl e having less disposable income. The elitists in the U.S. embarked on this globalist philosophy 30–40 years ago and there has been significant economic growth worldwide, but that has been at the expense of the American worker and to some degree our way of life. The introduction of massive amounts of consumer credit has only made things worse.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 589: Compl etely change out tax system. The first $30,000 of personal income would be compl etely free of Federal Income Tax.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 591: I would impl ement a hard estate and gift tax, whereby, 50% of any gift or estate over 100 million dollar would be paid at death. Reclaim massive wealth.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 593: I would offer tremendous incentives for companies to make the products we use here and induce other countries to make their own products to keep their workers empl oyed.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 601: I would drastically change the healthcare system to impl ement a “Single Rate Geographic structure” not a single payer system.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 603: I would compl ete revamp our higher education system to a bunch of 2 year programs designed to teach skills. That would start much earlier, nearer the Junior year in high school, thereby positioning students to begin professional life much earlier. Potentially taking those skills into an actual internship program for two years where they would get paid a nominal amount, instead of paying large sums for college.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 28: Sydämen kuiskaus play:none">Kuiskauxia
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 75: About Lindsfarne Gospels Bede expl ains how each of the four Evangelists was represented by their own symbol: Matthew was the man, representing the human Christ; Mark was the lion, symbolising the triumphant Christ of the Resurrection; Luke was the calf, symbolising the sacrificial victim of the Crucifixion; and John was the eagle, symbolising Christ's second coming. A collective term for the symbols of the four Evangelists is the Tetramorphs. Each of the four Evangelists is accompanied by their respective symbol in their miniature portraits in the manuscript. In these portraits, Matthew, Mark, and Luke are shown writing, while John looks straight ahead at the reader holding his scroll. The Evangelists also represent the dual nature of Christ. Mark and John are shown as young men, symbolising the divine nature of Christ, and Matthew and Luke appear older and bearded, representing Christ's mortal nature.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 83: ONAN, as almost everybody knows, was killed by God for the heinous crime of "spilling his seed upon the ground". This, throughout history, has associated him with masturbation, beginning with the writings of Clement of Alexandria. And I agree, that when DFW mentions O.N.A.N., that connotation is impl ied. But that's not why God was mad at Onan. If you go read the whole sordid story in Genesis 38: when God killed Onan's brother, for reasons which are a bit obscure, leaving his widow childless, it was the custom that Onan was required to marry her and father a child upon her. This child would legally be his brother's. This was known as Levirate marriage. Onan didn't want any children who weren't legally his, so Onan "went in" to his brother's wife but pulled out early and "spilled his seed on the ground". So Onan's real sin was refusing to Consumate his Levirate Marriage. Now, once God whacked Onan, his widow had to wait for his remaining brother to grow up. But she got tired of waiting and put on a veil(!!!!) and tricked Onan's father into having sex with her. So a painting of the "Consummation of the Levirates" might be Onan's father banging his sons' wife....
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 108: Juhana Vartiaisen ryömiessä jälleen kerran lattialistan alta esille toinen torakka Ville Rydman perässä tuli mieleen että sekin on erehdyttävästi Hiidenpadan Rääpän näköinen. Ehkä rääppä onkin enemmänkin tollainen ammattinimike, jonkun Hornansarven adjuntantti aloittaa vt. rääppänä ja ylenee sitten päätoimisexi rääpäxi, unelmana loppuviimein päästä nilkixi nilkin paikalle. Rääpästä tuli siten mieleen nilkki jonka komennossa laitosneuvostoliiton rääpät viihtyivät. Eli olisko aika kazoa onko nilkin Jalasjärvi-pl okiin ilmestynyt jotain uutta räävittävää. Se ei ole ollut oikein aktiivinen viime aikoina, oiskohan sillä jotain lääketieteellisiä ongelmia.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 236: Jesus is the Son of God. Jesus is triumphant over unclean spirits. Jesus liberates the captive, and gives hope to hopeless peopl e — even Gentile peopl e. But Jesus demands a choice: love him and his salvation, or love your prosperity and your wealth — namely, your pigs. Don't try it yourself at home.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 238: The Bible is pretty silent about tattoos. Search any concordance and you will not find restrictions on abortions, on gambling, or on tattoos. So how do we know whether a thing is sin or not if the Bible is silent on a particular issue? Is it a sin to have a tattoo according to biblical principl es? What about a Christian symbol like a cross for a tattoo? Surely that would be acceptable wouldn’t it?
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 409: Elena Ferrante on kuin Wallun Hugh "Helen" Steepl y, jonka sukupuoli-identiteetti jää arvoituxexi. Tulee mieleen amerikkalaiset koevanhemmat, joiden mielestä vaaleansinisissä vaipoissa ryömivät beibit oli reippaita ja noppelia, ja vaaleanpunaisissa kellivät herttaisia ja hymyileviä. Keltaisissa olevista vauvoista ne eivät osanneet sanoa ja koittivat kurkistella vaippoihin.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 429: You did it! You did it! You said that you would do it, Every trick that he could pl ay,
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 443: English peopl e aren't.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 498: The west-side story here, reduced to its elements: “Manhattan” is a movie about a five-foot middle-aged Jew who beds a sweet 17-year-old girl, breaks her heart when he leaves her for someone else and only comes crawling back when he gets dumped. It is not simpl y that so many of us were so besotted with the film for so long; it’s that we were perfectly content to look and see the small tits and the virgin butt. The problem was an addiction to “the self-gratifying view,’’ Mr. Allen suggested - having made another movie about how he relentlessly does what he pl eases. Butt on fire. Joey Buttafuoco quickly became an object of derision, the butt of the joke instead of Allen.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 500: Vitas Gerulaitis was some stupid Lithuanian immigrant tennis pl ayer in the 80's who died of carbon monoxide poisoning in his pool. During a tennis match, didn't the late tennis great Vitas Gerulaitis tell a Jewish umpire who had ruled against him, "You should be exterminated in a crematorium?" Well, this isn't precisely the same wording as your quote, but the meaning is similar:
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 530: Mistä tässä kaikessa on kysymys? Helppoa, sanoo hirvi. Kyse on kapitalismin ankarasta laista. Siitä kasautumisen ja kurjistumisen suppilosta, jonka parta-kalle niin hyvin kuvasi ja ennusti. Kapitalismi toimii vain avoimena järjestelmänä, jossa toisesta tuutista tulee sisään köyhiä ja niistä kupl ii kökkäreitä eliitixi pinnalle. Aina on löydettävä vielä köyhempiä, joille R-kioskin pitäminen on win-win tilanne, jolloin aikaisemmat köyhimyxet siirtyvät yhteiskunnan "harteille" ja muuttuvat persuixi ja nazeixi. Mitä väliä, kuha raha virtaa luonnollisella painollaan ylöspäin talouskupl ina ja kasautuu yhä harvalukuisemmalle omistavalle luokalle. Jotka voivat sitten vaikka lähettää sen raketilla taivaalle.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 539: Tukholman Medborgarpl atsenille kokoontui lauantaina SATOJA ihmisiä osoittamaan mieltään ”vapauden ja totuuden” puolesta. Mekin on oltu siellä kahvilla.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 569: "Roger, Wilco" are both military radio terms, and often heard together in WWII films, but should never be used together in correct military radio etiquette. "Roger" means "Message received and understood". "Wilco" means "Message received and understood, will compl y with your instructions".
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 571: Roger on radioliikenteen hymiö (._.) eli "R", vastaanotettu ja ymmärretty, "I read you". Wilco on "will compl y" eli aye aye sir, ymmärrän ja hyväxyn komennon. Tässähän se ymmärtämisen ja hyväxymisen ero juuri on!
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 573: If Kip humped his dreamgirl Peewee it would count as statutory rape. I'm sure Bob would shut an understanding eye to that. If the wormfaces ate up them both that would count as a mutton snack. Bob would not countenance anything like that. We are peopl e , not some animals like sheep, or hobgoblins either, come to that. You gotta choose your team, and stick to them. George Byron would not agree, nor do I.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 583: Write a letter to the future: set goals for yourself, make a prediction about the world. Envision the future, and then make it happen. FutureMe has been delivering letters to the future for millions of peopl e since 2002.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 608: The prefect says that he and his police detectives have searched D-'s town house and have found nothing. They checked behind the wallpaper and under the carpets. His men have examined the tables and chairs with magnifying glasses and then probed the cushions with needles but have found no sign of interference; the letter is not hidden in these pl aces. Dupin asks the prefect if he knows what he is seeking, and the prefect reads a minute description of the letter, which Dupin memorizes. The prefect then bids them good day.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 612: Alone together, the narrator asks Dupin how he found the letter. Dupin expl ains the Paris police are competent within their limitations, but have underestimated with whom they are dealing. The prefect mistakes the Minister D— for a fool because he is a poet. (Siis kumpi on? Perfekti vai ministeri Dee? No Poe on ainakin, senhän sanoo nimikin, Poe-t. Ja hölmökin se on.) For exampl e, Dupin expl ains how an eight-year-old boy made a small fortune from his friends at a game called Odds and Evens. The boy had determined the intelligence of his opponents and pl ayed upon that to interpret their next move. Tästä aiheesta on valtava amer. kirjallisuus, koskien vangin dilemman toistoja. He expl ains that D— knew the police detectives would have assumed that the blackmailer would have concealed the letter in an elaborate hiding pl ace, and thus hid it in pl ain sight.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 617: Dupin says he had visited the minister at his hotel. Compl aining of weak eyes he wore a pair of green spectacles, the true purpose of which was to disguise his eyes as he searched for the letter. In a cheap card rack hanging from a dirty ribbon, he saw a half-torn letter and recognized it as the letter of the story's title. Striking up a conversation with D— about a subject in which the minister is interested, Dupin examined the letter more closely. It did not resemble the letter the prefect described so minutely; the writing was different, and it was sealed not with the "ducal arms" of the S— family, but with D—'s monogram. Dupin noticed that the paper was chafed as if the stiff paper was first rolled one way and then another. Dupin concluded that D— wrote a new address on the reverse of the stolen one, re-folded it the opposite way and sealed it with his own seal.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 619: Dupin left a snuff box behind as an excuse to return the next day. Resuming the same conversation they had begun the previous day, D— was startled by a gunshot in the street. While he went to investigate, Dupin switched D—'s letter for a dupl icate.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 621: Dupin expl ains that the gunshot distraction was arranged by him and that he left a dupl icate letter to ensure his ability to leave the hotel without D— suspecting his actions. If he had tried to seize it openly, Dupin surmises D— might have had him killed. As both a political supporter of the queen and old enemy of the minister [who had done an evil deed to Dupin in Vienna in the past], Dupin also hopes that D— will try to use the power he no longer has, to his political downfall, and at the end be presented with a quotation from Prosper Jolyot de Crébillon's pl ay Atrée et Thyeste that impl ies Dupin was the thief: Un dessein si funeste, S'il n'est digne d'Atrée, est digne de Thyeste (If such a sinister design isn't worthy of Atreus, it is worthy of Thyestes).
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 633: Atreus then learned of Thyestes' and Aerope's adultery and pl otted revenge. He killed Thyestes' sons and cooked them, save their hands and heads. He served Thyestes his own sons and then taunted him with their hands and heads. This is the source of modern phrase "Thyestean Feast," or one at which human flesh is served. When Thyestes was done with his feast, he released a loud belch, which represents satiety and pl easure and his loss of self-control.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 649: The Scarlet Letter: A Romance is a work of historical fiction by American author Nathaniel Hawthorne, published in 1850. Set in Puritan Massachusetts Bay Colony during the years 1642 to 1649, the novel tells the story of Hester Prynne, who conceives a daughter through an affair and then struggles to create a new life of repentance and dignity. Containing a number of religious and historic allusions, the book expl ores themes of legalism, sin, and guilt.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 661: As Hester looks out over the crowd, she notices a small, misshapen man and recognizes him as her long-lost husband, who has been presumed lost at sea. When the husband sees Hester's shame, he asks a man in the crowd about her and is told the story of his wife's adultery. He angrily exclaims that the child's father, the partner in the adulterous act, should also be punished and vows to find the man. He chooses a new name, Roger Chillingworth, to aid him in his pl an.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 665: Following her release from prison, Hester settles in a cottage at the edge of town and earns a meager living with her needlework, which is of extraordinary quality. She lives a quiet, somber life with her daughter, Pearl, and performs acts of charity for the poor. She is troubled by her daughter´s unusual fascination with the scarlet "A". The shunning of Hester also extends to Pearl, who has no pl aymates or friends except her mother. As she grows older, Pearl becomes capricious and unruly. Her conduct starts rumors, and, not surprisingly, the church members suggest Pearl be taken away from Hester.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 669: Because Dimmesdale´s health has begun to fail, the townspeopl e are happy to have Chillingworth, the newly arrived physician, take up lodgings with their beloved minister. Being in such close contact with Dimmesdale, Chillingworth begins to suspect that the minister´s illness is the result of some unconfessed guilt. He appl ies psychological pressure to the minister because he suspects Dimmesdale is Pearl´s father. One evening, pulling the sleeping Dimmesdale´s vestment aside, Chillingworth sees a symbol that represents his shame on the minister´s pale chest.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 673: Several days later, Hester meets Dimmesdale in the forest and tells him of her husband and his desire for revenge. She convinces Dimmesdale to leave Boston in secret on a ship to Europe where they can start life anew. Inspired by this pl an, the minister seems to gain new energy. On Election Day, Dimmesdale gives one of his most inspired sermons. But as the procession leaves the church, Dimmesdale climbs upon the scaffold and confesses his sin, dying in Hester´s arms. Later, most witnesses swear that they saw a stigma in the form of a scarlet "A" upon his chest, although some deny this statement. Chillingworth, losing his will for revenge, dies shortly thereafter and leaves Pearl a substantial inheritance.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 675: After several years, Hester returns to her cottage and resumes wearing the scarlet letter. When she dies, she is buried near the grave of Dimmesdale, and they share a simpl e slate tombstone engraved with an escutcheon described as: "On a field, sable, the letter A, gules" ("A red letter A written on a black background").
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 687: He worked at the Boston Custom House and joined Brook Farm, a transcendentalist community, before marrying Peabody in 1842. The coupl e moved to The Old Manse in Concord, Massachusetts, later moving to Salem, the Berkshires, then to The Wayside in Concord. The Scarlet Letter was published in 1850, followed by a succession of other novels. A political appointment as consul took Hawthorne and family to Europe before their return to Concord in 1860.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 691: The major theme of The Scarlet Letter is shaming and social stigmatizing, both Hester´s public humiliation and Dimmesdale´s private shame and fear of exposure. Notably, their liaison is never spoken of, so the circumstances that led to Hester´s pregnancy, and how their affair was kept secret never become part of the pl ot.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 695: Elmer Kennedy-Andrews remarks that Hawthorne in "The Custom-house" sets the context for his story and "tells us about ´romance´, which is his preferred generic term to describe The Scarlet Letter, as his subtitle for the book – ´A Romance´ – would indicate." In this introduction, Hawthorne describes a space between materialism and "dreaminess" that he calls "a neutral territory, somewhere between the real world and fairy-land, where the Actual and the Imaginary may meet, and each imbues itself with nature of the other". This combination of "dreaminess" and realism gave the author space to expl ore major themes.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 742: Rudyard Kipl ing tunnusti suuren velkansa Poelle ja ihaili etenkin tämän kykyä herättää kauhua. Myös Arthur Conan Doyle tunnusti Poen valtavan merkityksen omaan tuotantoonsa ja Sherlock Holmesin salapoliisihahmoon ja usein mainitsikin Poen tarinoissaan. Poen vaikutus näkyy myös esimerkiksi Joseph Conradin ja James Joycen teoksissa. Tunnettuja romaaneja, jotka perustuvat Poen tarinoihin, ovat esimerkiksi Stevensonin Tohtori Jekyll ja Mr. Hyde ja Oscar Wilden Dorian Grayn muotokuva.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 751: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/97/Edgar_Allan_Poe%2C_circa_1849%2C_restored%2C_squared_off.jpg/400px-Edgar_Allan_Poe%2C_circa_1849%2C_restored%2C_squared_off.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 774: And the silken, sad, uncertain rustling of each purpl e curtain Surulliset nuo kartiinit väriltänsä kretliinit,
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 782: “Sir,” said I, “or Madam, truly your forgiveness I impl ore; Hyvä herra, rouva, mikälie, sisään sieltä piruvie,
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 798: Let me see, then, what thereat is, and this mystery expl ore— Kurkistanpa räppänästä, näkyykö jälki käppänästä,
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 799: Let my heart be still a moment and this mystery expl ore;— kestäös vaan sydämmeni, joskus huonomminkin sulla meni!
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 816: Much I marvelled this ungainly fowl to hear discourse so pl ainly, Kylläpä mä ihmettelin: Kana löysi partikkelin?
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 823: But the Raven, sitting lonely on the pl acid bust, spoke only Yxinäinen vanha varis tuskin mitään muuta maris.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 830: Startled at the stillness broken by repl y so aptly spoken, Hätkähdin mä lausumaa erittäinkin osuvaa.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 861: On this home by Horror haunted—tell me truly, I impl ore— Ei jaxa tota samaa virttä. Toukka seuloo seinähirttä,
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 862: Is there—is there balm in Gilead?—tell me—tell me, I impl ore!” päivät päälletysten tylsiä: saanko käsineittä bylsiä?
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 874: Leave no black pl ume as a token of that lie thy soul hath spoken! Ala mennä korjaa luusi senkin Pluto, sille huusin.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 888: Poe describes his method in writing "The Raven" in the essay "The Philosophy of Composition", and he claims to have strictly followed this method. It has been questioned whether he really followed this system, however. T. S. Eliot said: "It is difficult for us to read that essay without reflecting that if Poe pl otted out his poem with such calculation, he might have taken a little more pains over it: the result hardly does credit to the method."
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 890: "The Philosophy of Composition" is Edgar Allan Poe's theory about how good writers write when they write well. He concludes that length, "unity of effect" and a logical method are important considerations for good writing. He also makes the assertion that "the death... of a beautiful woman" is "unquestionably the most poetical topic in the world". Poe uses the composition of his own poem "The Raven" as an exampl e. The essay first appeared in the April 1846 issue of Graham's Magazine. It is uncertain if it is an authentic portrayal of Poe's own method.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 906: The essay states Poe's conviction that a work of fiction should be written only after the author has decided how it is to end and which emotional response, or "effect", he wishes to create, commonly known as the "unity of effect". Once this effect has been determined, the writer should decide all other matters pertaining to the composition of the work, including tone, theme, setting, characters, conflict, and pl ot. In this case, Poe logically decides on "the death... of a beautiful woman" as it "is unquestionably the most poetical topic in the world, and equally is it beyond doubt that the lips best suited for such topic are those of a bereaved lover." Some commentators have taken this to impl y that pure poetry can only be attained by the eradication of female beauty. Biographers and critics have often suggested that Poe's obsession with this theme stems from the repeated loss of women throughout his life, including his mother Eliza Poe, his foster mother Frances Allan and, later, his wife Virginia.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 912: In the essay, Poe traces the logical progression of his creation of "The Raven" as an attempt to compose "a poem that should suit at once the popular and the critical taste." He claims that he considered every aspect of the poem. For exampl e, he purposely set the poem on a tempestuous evening, causing the raven to seek shelter. He purposefully chose a pallid bust to contrast with the dark pl ume of the bird. The bust was of Pallas in order to evoke the notion of scholar, to match with the presumed student narrator poring over his "volume[s] of forgotten lore." No aspect of the poem was an accident, he claims, but is based on total control by the author.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 914: Even the term "Nevermore," he says, is based on logic following the "unity of effect." The sounds in the vowels in particular, he writes, have more meaning than the definition of the word itself. He had previously used words like "Lenore" for the same effect. The raven itself, Poe says, is meant to symbolize Mournful and Never-ending Remembrance. This may impl y an autobiographical significance to the poem, alluding to the many peopl e in Poe's life who had died.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 916: George Rex Graham, a friend and former empl oyer of Poe, declined Poe's offer to be the first to print "The Raven". Graham said he did not like the poem but offered $15 as a charity. Graham made up for his poor decision by publishing "The Philosophy of Composition" in the April 1846 issue of Graham's American Monthly Magazine of Literature and Art. Another act of charity.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 926: Ain't got no pl ace to lay your head
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 939: Joku pl okinpitäjä kirjoittaa siitä:
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 951: Kyl nää on aivan alta lipan nää Poen kauhut. Täysin limboa pl ayboylehtikamaa. Jos niissä on jotain viisasta niin se menee yli hilseen niin että tukka heilahtaa. Tai sitne on vaan liian kammottavia minulle. Menen sohvan taaxe piiloon ja haukun sen alta kuin Sammeli. Mä en siedä hienoja viisauxia, kun mulle tulee niistä mieleen visaneuvos Koulupää. Ehkä mä en niitä edes tunnista. Mulle maistuu tälläset lattapäisemmät, joissa seikkailee alhaisemmat eläimet.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 28: Ilman Pipsaa ei olisi muutakaan play:none">Huutoja
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 70: Hetken hiljaisuuden jälkeen jengi ymmärtää ja koko sali puhkeaa apl odeihin. Sitähän tässä jo vähän odoteltiinkin. Amerikkalaiset 50-luvun viihdejäbät osas ton ajotuxen ihan mikrosekunnilleen. Ne ei koskaan jatkaneet läppää ennekuin läpytys ja hirnunta oli oikeasti tauonnut.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 140: Esimerkiksi tilastotieteen lehtori Kimmo Vehkalahti kertoo olevansa vaikuttunut siitä, miten Saarinen pistää itsensä likoon. Eski vaikuttaakin aika lipeäiseltä. Mutta sen leotardintäpl ät ei lähde edes pesussa. Hän on saanut Pafoksella innostusta ja aikaa ajatella, Eski on saanut sieltä taas aimo läjän pätäkkää. Mikään pyhäkoulu tämä ei kuitenkaan ole. Jatkoilla voi sattua yhtä jos toista, josta Eski ei kerro kotona.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 199: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 256: – Syntyi uutta ajattelua. Niistä ajatuksista kannattaa pitää kiinni, koska hetken päästä ne hukkuvat hektisyyden hämärään. Alkaa taas se arkiryske josta olen kirjoittanut mun pl okissa.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 263: – Viime vuodet aina koronamaaliskuun alkuun asti oli täynnä kaikenlaista tehokasta meininkiä, mitä nyt on vaikea edes muistaa, mitä se kaikki oli. Onnexi on tää pl oki mistä voi vähän kerrata.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 279: – Olisin voinut olla poikien kanssa enemmän. Vaikka elämäni on ollut pl usmerkkistä, se on todellisuudessa perustunut joiltakin osin vähän turhan itsekkäille miinusmerkkisille sankaruuspyrkimyksille.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 334: Milton Friedman (/ˈfriːdmən/; July 31, 1912 – November 16, 2006) was an American economist who received the 1976 Nobel Memorial Prize in Economic Sciences for his research on consumption analysis, monetary history and theory and the compl exity of stabilization policy. With George Stigler and other jews, Friedman was among the intellectual leaders of the Chicago school of economics, a neoclassical school of economic thought associated with the work of the faculty at the University of Chicago that rejected Keynesianism in favor of monetarism until the mid-1970s, when it turned to new classical macroeconomics heavily based on the concept of rational expectations.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 336: He specialized in mathematics and economics, and became influenced by two economics professors, Arthur F. Burns and Homer Jones, who convinced him that printing more money could help end the Great Depression. Friedman met his future wife, economist Rose Director, while at the University of Chicago. Good name. Milton got a doctorate rather late, in 1946, counting the income of typical Jewish professions. His "consumption function", unlike Keynes, took into account that households overspend on the basis of their felt class membership and optimistic income expectations. Good news for suppl y side economics.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 340: Milton Friedman believed that Social Security benefits were the genesis of the welfare state and dependency on government handouts. He advocated the repl acement of all welfare programs in America with a negative income tax (effectively a universal basic income, or handouts to the poor) because he did not believe that "society" (the rich) would distribute resources evenly enough for all peopl e to earn a living. Let the destitute have a pittance though they don't deserve it. If they choose to spend it all on drugs that's their choice.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 342: Friedman was an idiosyncratic figure who would be hard to pigeonhole in the current political spectrum, he kinda drops off on the ultraviolet side. He inspired the conservative movement, but was against any discrimination against gay peopl e, in addition to being an agnostic. He was a libertarian who advocated for a progressive income tax system that even went into the negative to ensure that everyone could, at the very least, meet their basic needs. Elon Musk is all for basic income too. But he also wants to send a Tesla to deep space as a token of esteem to alien intelligence. With a piece of cardboard inside the windshield spelling HUMAN. To sum up, Freedman and Musk are both East European emigrants, Elon is not a jew, and Milton was not gay, although a funny guy.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 359: It appears to me that in Ethics, as in all other philosophical studies, the difficulties and disagreements, of which its history is full, are mainly due to a very simpl e cause: namely to the attempt to answer questions, without first discovering precisely what question it is which you desire to answer.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 380: Among his major contributions to linguistic theory was the hypothesis that not all langages are like English, which Noam Chomsky found difficult to believe. Hale suggested that certain languages were non-configurational, lacking the phrase structure characteristic of such languages as English. Some peopl e were Indians and aboriginals, and some were Finns with a baby and no pl ace to put it in.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 395: Of Humber would compl ain. I would paisuessa "Humberin". Mä rakastaisin sua Humberin takaa kaipausta
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 397: And you should if you pl ease refuse Ja sä voisit vaikka kiellellä torjuisit, kunnes uskostaan
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 421: The Grave's a fine and private pl ace, Hauta on hieno ja yxityinen paikka, On hieno paikka haudan povi,
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 456: Further in the field of science fiction, Ursula K. Le Guin wrote a Hugo-nominated short story whose title, "Vaster than Empires and More Slow", is taken from the poem. Ian Watson notes the debt of this story to Marvell, "whose compl ex and allusive poems are of a later form of pastoral to that which I shall refer, and, like Marvell, Le Guin's nature references are, as I want to argue, "pastoral" in a much more fundamental and interesting way than this simpl istic use of the term." There are other allusions to the poem in the field of Fantasy and Science Fiction: the first book of James Kahn's "New World Series" is titled "World Enough, and Time"; the third book of Joe Haldeman's "Worlds" trilogy is titled "Worlds Enough and Time"; and Peter S. Beagle's novel A Fine and Private Place about a love affair between two ghosts in a graveyard. The latter phrase has been widely used as a euphemism for the grave, and has formed the title of several mystery novels.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 458: Brian Aldiss's novel Hothouse, set in a distant future in which the earth is dominated by pl ant life, opens with "My vegetable should grow / vaster than empires, and more slow."
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 459: Terry Pratchett opens his poem An Ode to Multipl e Universes with "I do have worlds enough and time / to spare an hour to find a rhyme / to take a week to pen an article / a day to find a rhyme for ‘particle’."
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 473: The line "A fine and private pl ace, but none, I think, do there embrace" appears in Stephen King's novel Pet Sematary.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 480: The line "I would Love you ten years before the Flood, And you should, if you pl ease, refuse Till the conversion of the Jews. My vegetable love should grow Vaster than empires, and more slow." Is used as the preamble to part three of Greg Bear's Nebula award winning novel Moving Mars.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 495: a time to pl ant and a time to uproot,
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 567: He had been in failing health for many years before his death, suffering two strokes, diabetes and the incurable lung disease pulmonary fibrosis. In 1999 he had a liver transpl ant. As he neared death, Knievel hinted at the dark secrets which remained locked in his heart.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 611: Syrjäytymisvaaraa tällä pojalla ei ollut. Hän pääsi saman tien töihin Teiniliittoon, joka 1960- ja 70-lukujen vaihteessa eli kukoistuskauttaan vasemmalta puhaltavassa myötätuulessa. "– Miellyttämisen halu ei kuulu sukuni vahvuuksiin, Yrjö naurahtaa ja puhuu kymmenisen vuotta sitten kuolleesta isästään, taidemaalari ja pilapiirtäjä 'tupl ayrjö' Jurij Georg Engeströmistä, paljon ja rakastavasti." ”Miellyttämisen halu ei kuulu sukuni vahvuuksiin.” No ei tosiaan, se nähdään sen massayrittäjäpojastakin, joka on raivoissaan kun Sanna Marin ei sitä tottele. ”Suomi on pieni ja simppeli yhteiskunta. Täällä ollaan tyhmiä, täällä on helppo pioneeriliittolaisten kähmiä. Toivottavasti päättäjät eivät pilaa tätä kaikkea.”
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 616: Cultural-historical activity theory (CHAT) is a theoretical framework which helps to understand and analyse the relationship between the human mind (what peopl e think and feel) and activity (what peopl e do). It traces its origins to the founders of the cultural-historical school of Russian psychology L. S. Vygotsky and Aleksei N. Leontiev. Tää oli Esa Sariolan lempilapsi, jonka se kiusasi höynähtäneitä veistoluokissa.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 618: Elsewhere CHAT has been defined as "a cross-discipl inary framework for studying how humans purposefully transform natural and social reality, including themselves, as an ongoing culturally and historically situated, materially and socially mediated process". Core ideas are: 1) humans act collectively, learn by doing, and communicate in and via their actions; 2) humans make, empl oy, and adapt tools of all kinds to learn and communicate; and 3) community is central to the process of making and interpreting meaning – and thus to all forms of learning, communicating, and acting.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 620: The term CHAT was coined by Michael Cole and popularized by Yrjö Engeström to promote the unity of what, by the 1990s, had become a variety of currents harking back to Vygotsky's work. Engeström's now famous diagram, or basic activity triangle, – (which adds rules/norms, intersubjective community relations, and division of labor, as well as multipl e activity systems sharing an object) – has become the principal third-generation model among the research community for analysing individuals and groups. Engeström summarizes the current state of CHAT with five principl es:
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 622: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/51/Third_Generation_CHAT.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 623: ploads/2018/03/scan0030_medium.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 625: Multi-voicedness: an activity system is always a community of multipl e points of views, traditions and interests.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 649: Onnistumisia on paljon, kuten Helsingin kaupungin innovaatiopalkinnon vuonna 2010 saanut vanhusten Liikkumissopimus. Sen tarkoituksena on vahvistaa kotihoidon potilaiden toimintakykyä arkiliikuntaa lisäämällä. Yrjöillä siihen liittyy liikkuminen kerroxittain vanhempien petillä. Kubilabala, liiku horisontaalisesti, huutaa Liisa alta neuvoja. Yksi Engeströmin keskeisiä teesejä on kollektiivinen oppiminen. Nyt loppusuoralla on Suomen Akatemian rahoittama tutkimus, jonka tarkoitus on kerätä tästä yhteisöllisiä esimerkkejä ympäri maailmaa. Niitä voisi löytyä sieltä etelämeren saarilta, joilta Margaret Mead löysi vapaasti kasvatettuja kubilabala-sexin harrastajia. (Sekin tutkimus osoittautui huijauxexi loppuviimexi. Etelämeren saarelaiset veti Meadia vaan höpl ästä ja hihitteli kouraansa.)
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 662: Kaikkien aikojen paskin paskapl ärä Hesari on lähtenyt rintamahyökkäyxeen Aamulehti-konsernin Talouselämä-lehteä vastaan, jonka laatujournalistiikasta oli edellisen paasauxen "Jyri" esimerkkinä. ("Jyri" on muuten pahaa enteilevä nimi, vertaa vaikka "Jyri" Häkämies. Tai tää .) Ne (pl ärät siis) kilpailevat nyt siitä kumpi saa ostettua rahnapaskiaisten sielut puolelleen ja pääsevät ryömimään luteina niiden pullottavaan lompakkoon.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 682: Päivittäinen podcast aloittaa maanantaina 8. maaliskuuta ja sen voit tilata jo nyt näistä linkeistä esimerkiksi Spotifystä, Supl asta, Appl en sivulta, Googlelta tai muista rahamiesoikeiston palveluista.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 712: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2d/Emiliano_Zapata.tiff/lossy-page1-250px-Emiliano_Zapata.tiff.jpg" height="150px" />
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 713: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/73/Ni%C3%B1o_Soldado.jpg/190px-Ni%C3%B1o_Soldado.jpg" height="150px" />
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 774: ple" title="Black peopl e">Black
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 786: ples_of_the_Americas" title="Indigenous peopl es of the Americas">Amerindian
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 790: ple" title="Black peopl e">Black
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 801: ple" title="Criollo peopl e">criollo
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 820: ple" title="Criollo peopl e">criollo
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 862: ple)" class="mw-redirect" title="Maroon (peopl e)">cimarrón
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 895: ploads/2020/03/13.3.20_3.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 28: Päiväkirjan lisälehtiä play:none">Muistoja
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 117: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/58/Theodolinda_Hahnsson.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 124: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/fc/Yrj%C3%B6_Koskinen.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 285: Gerhart (Johann Robert) Hauptmann (1862-1946: prominent German dramatist of the early 20th century. Hauptmann won the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1912. His naturalistic pl ays are still frequently performed. Hauptmann's best-known works include The Weavers (1893), a humanist drama of a rebellion against the mechanisms of the Industrial Revolution, and Hannele (1884), about the conflict between reality and fantasy.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 287: Die versunkene Glocke, 1896 (pl ay, prod. 1896)
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 292: Hauptmann's early dramas reflect the influence of Henrik Ibsen, but the production of Die Weber, a dramatization of the Silesian weavers' revolt of 1844, brought him fame as the leading pl aywright of his generation. Hauptmann did not only want to give realistic details, but he paid a great deal of attention to historical accuracy, and studied various dialects. His weavers are "flat-chested, coughing creatures of the looms, whose knees are bent with much sitting." The women's clothes are ragged, but some of the young girls are not without charm � they have "delicate figures, large protruding melancholy eyes." Structurally the pl ay, which was at first banned, was innovative � there is no single, individual hero in the cast of more than 70 characters. (Didn't exceed the 80 character limit of first generation mainframe computers.)
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 294: Die versunkene Glocke (1897), a symbolic story of a master bell founder and his struggle as an artist, has been one of Hauptmann's most popular pl ays. After this Hauptmann wrote the tragedies Fuhrmann Henschel (1899), Michael Kramer (1900), and Rose Bernd (1903). These works also reflected the personal turmoil Hauptmann was then in he had fallen for a fourteen-year-old girl, a promising violinist Margarete Marschalk. She was the opposite of his wife, interested in his work, and in such outdoor sports as hiking, ice-skating, andf skiing. After Hauptmann wife found out about her rival, she moved with the children to Dresden. Hauptmann had a son, Benvenuto, with Margarete, and in 1904, after a long period of agonising thought, Hauptmann divorced Marie and married Margarete. However, a year later he met a sixteen-year-old actress, Ida Orloff, who became a new object of his obsession. Hauptmann described her in his letters as a moth flirting with flames, as a bewitching Siren, as a mermaid, and as a cruel spider.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 300: In 1885 Hauptmann set up a home with his wife in the little lakeside village of Erkner. Abandoning his early romantic ideals, he became convinced that life should be depicted as it is. From the intellectual currents of his day he adopted a belief in scientific causality and materialism. His early stories 'Fasching' (1887) and 'Bahnwärter Thiel' (1888) were tales of simpl e peopl e, although there is also a level which transcends the boundaries of realism.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 302: Throughout the Nazi regime, Hauptmann remained in Germany, which Goebbels used as a propaganda tool, claiming that he had made his peace with the Nazis. The Third Reich refused to allow him to receive the Schiller Prize, for which he was almost continuously recommended. A compl ete seventeen- volume edition of his works came out in 1942. Hauptmann died on June 6 1946 of pneumonia, at his home in Agnetendorf. His last work, the unfinished Der neue Christophorus, was again a story of suffering humanity.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 308: In scramble competition resources are limited, which may lead to group member starvation. Contest competition is often the result of aggressive social domains, including hierarchies or social chains. Conversely, scramble competition is what occurs by accident when competitors naturally want the same resources. These two forms of competition can be interwoven into one another. Some researchers have noted parallels between intraspecific behaviors of competition and cooperation. These two processes can be evolutionarily adopted and they can also be accidental, which makes sense given the aggressive competition and collaborative cooperation aspects of social behavior in humans and animals. To date, few studies have looked at the interpl ay between contest and scramble competition, despite the fact that they do not occur in isolation. There appears to be little understanding of the interface between contest competition and scramble competition in insects. Much research still needs to be conducted concerning the overlap of contest and scramble competition systems. Contests can arise within a scramble competition system and conversely, scramble competition "may pl ay a role in a system characterized by interference".
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 310: Population can be greatly affected by scramble competition (and contest competition). Intraspecific competition normally leads to a decline of organisms. For exampl e, the more time that an individual spends seeking food and reproduction opportunities, the less energy that organism naturally has to defend oneself against predators, resulting in a "zero-sum game". Competition is a density dependent effect, and scramble competition is no exception. Scramble competition usually involves interactions among individuals of the same species, which makes competition balanced and often leads to a decline of population growth rate as the amount of resources depl etes. Ei niin pahaa ettei jotain hyvääkin.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 323: Luettuani pari New Yorkerin ilmaisjuttua se alkoi vaikuttaa herlinluokan suomen kuvalehtimaiselta porvaristopl ärältä. Nähtävästi onkin mutta sehän on jenkkioloissa äkkiväärää vasemmistoa. NewYorker on upporikkaan jutkupoppoon omistama ja operoima gefillte fish myymälä. Mutta jenkkisilmäkulmasta se näyttää joltain tiedonantajalta. Kuinkas tää on ymmärettävissä?
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 327: In politics, left refers to peopl e and groups that have liberal views. That generally means they support progressive reforms, especially those seeking greater social and economic equality. The far left is often used for what is considered more extreme, revolutionary views, such as communism and socialism. Collectively, peopl e and groups, as well as the positions they hold, are referred to as the Left or the left wing. What does right mean?
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 329: The word right, in contrast, refers to peopl e or groups that have conservative views. That generally means they are disposed to preserving existing conditions and institutions. Or, they want to restore traditional ones and limit change.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 330: The far right is often used for more extreme, nationalistic viewpoints, including fascism and some oppressive ideologies. Peopl e and groups, as well as their positions, are collectively referred to as the Right or the right wing.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 378: Left: Generally support gay marriage; support anti-discrimination laws to protect LGBT against workpl ace discrimination.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 411: Left: Based on community and social responsibility. Gay coupl es to get equal rights like everyone else (e.g. marriage); abortion should be legal; support embryonic stem cell research. Support restrictions and regulations around the right to bear arms. Supports taxpayer funding of Planned Parenthood.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 453: BD står för bindning och discipl in. Paul Bourgets bok hette Discipl in. Nej Discipel, förlåt. Men idén var den samma. I Swinburnes tid hette det algolagnia. Vidare litterära sadomasokister (förutom markisen själv) var Arabian Lawrence, Oberon (i Shakespeares komedi), Weininger, Pynchon, och Wallace, för att nämna bara några få. Vad är det med SM som attraherar författare? Eller vad är det med fiktion som attraherar sadomasokister?
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 474: we find that the most prominent expl anations include factors related to the quality of institutions, such as reliable and extensive welfare benefits, low corruption, and well-functioning democracy and state institutions. Furthermore, Nordic citizens experience a high sense of autonomy and freedom, as well as high levels of social trust towards each other, which pl ay an important role in determining life satisfaction. On the other hand, we show that a few popular expl anations for Nordic happiness such as the small population and homogeneity of the Nordic countries, and a few counterarguments against Nordic happiness such as the cold weather and the suicide rates, actually don't seem to have much to do with Nordic happiness.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 478: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 482: We know travel pl ans are impacted right now. But to fulfill your wanderlust, we'll continue to share stories that can inspire your next
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 484: Well, we asked ourselves this question, and considering how many countries are in Europe, we decided there are pl enty of things not to
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 490: expect many peopl e will vehemently disagree, especially if they already have strong opinions about the best European countries to live in and
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 509: of New York City’s Central Park. And like the park, it manages to have a ton of ungodly-rich peopl e living here, with 32 percent of the population made up of millionaires. Essentially inaccessible to anyone who’s not fabulously loaded.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 514:
We actually wonder why anyone would want to visit this pl ace, let alone live there. The food is drab, and the weather is worse . They serve beer at room temp. The museums are free, but they stole the art from cultures with far superior artists. Oh, and a certain current political situation has the country in a state of compl ete and utter disarray.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 518: We feel sorry for Moldova, as it’s easily Europe’s most forgotten country. Its peopl e are also among the least happy on Earth . Even unhappier than us. Forget it.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 526:
Its greatest claim to fame is that it has ple/">more cars than peopl e , admittedly a big pl us.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 570: Otherwise, this pl ace is about as depressing as you’d imagine for a former Soviet republic — and one where the greatest nuclear disaster in history took pl ace. Not as many burnt corpses as in Hiroshima and Nagasaki, so we are still leading there.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 575: In the pro column: It’s the happiest pl ace on Earth .
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 599: This country is like the cool goth kid of Europe. It’s proudly defiant, with a compl etely different language and alphabet than all those other Slavic nations. (What the fuck?) They had a proudly defiant ruler (Ceausescu) but he is dead.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 607: Kudos to Lithuania for telling the Soviets to shove it back in 1990 and starting the breakup of that union. It’s also believed that Lithuanian culture survived the Iron Curtain thanks to secret home schools and alternative history texts, which makes its peopl e sound really awesome. Isn't this just what we do? We are super-jealous of its surprisingly good basketball team.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 612: George Louis Costanza is a character in the American television sitcom Seinfeld, pl ayed by Jason Alexander. He has variously been described as a "short, stocky, slow-witted, bald man", "weak, spineless, man of temptations", and "Lord of the Idiots".
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 619: Make like every 20-something backpacker and head to Prague, then chill out and grab a pint along with that 15-link sausage sampl er in this thoroughly satisfying European nation. Not at all as crowded as Vatican.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 624: Let’s all just take some breaths and think about this. France has everything and always will, which is terribly frustrating. And they know this and so they deserve to be put in their pl ace whenever possible. When asked to choose the most arrogant peopl e in Europe, French peopl e chose themselves. We are very offended.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 650: We’re big fans of Germany mostly because of its language and the many awesome singular (or pl ural) words that describe something more compl ex. Everyone knows schadenfreude and wanderlust, but how about wurmgesicht und endlösung? The German language is the best language, basically.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 658: Italy is good for exorcisms. Half a million exorcisms take pl ace there annually, drinkable water flows freely from taps in town squares and locals drink an unseemly amount of undiluted caffeine every day. They just don't put as much water in it as we do.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 668: You must be doing something right when your country is known for its wooden shoes, mild cheeses, legal cannabis and insanely large flower industry. Bikes rule over cars. Dutch peopl e are tall, racist and generally boring. The cities are organized and clean, but not over clean like Switzerland. The standard of living is as high for the whites and life as hard for the other shades as the tourists in Amsterdam’s red-light district.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 674: First of all, God must be Polish. Interesting food, good and bad. Mostly bad. A pl us: it's much more affordable to travel there than, say, all of Western Europe.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 679: There are pretty beaches to drink beer and throw cigarette stubs on, and a pig breed that only comes here to party. Yes, pl ease.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 695: Incredible and affordable health care, housing and transit, jobs are pl entiful, education is accessible, pollution and crime barely exist, and peopl e spend very little time feeling sad and depressed about the future, unlike the rest of the world. Who cares about climate? It can only get better here as it gets warmer.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 696: Danes even have a word called “janteloven ” that basically means, we’re all equal and important and deserve each other’s respect. This makes it an awesome pl ace to live in, an awesome pl ace for all to visit, and the best country in Europe.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 704: Se laulu jäi John Mottiltakin laulamatta Titanicissa, kun ne purjehtikin SS Lapl andilla. Jumala tarvii meitä, tuumasivat onnekkaat lähetit.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 772: Emily Greene Balch (January 8, 1867 – January 9, 1961) was an American economist, sociologist and pacifist. Balch combined an academic career at Wellesley College with a long-standing interest in social issues such as poverty, child labor, and immigration, as well as settlement work to upl ift poor immigrants and reduce juvenile delinquency. Mother Thing. She became a central leader of the Women's International League for Peace and Freedom (WILPF) based in Switzerland, for which she won the Nobel Peace Prize in 1946. In a letter to the president of Wellesley, she wrote we should follow "the ways of Jesus." Her spiritual thoughts were that American economy was "far from being in harmony with the principl es of Jesus which we profess." Wellesley College terminated her contract in 1919.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 784: A typical exampl e is her work concerning immigrants. She was the first professor in America to give students a course of lectures on problems relating to immigrants. Best known, undoubtedly, is her work on the Slav immigrants in the United States, a work which is said to be a landmark in the scientific analysis of immigration problems3. This work provides a perfect illustration of her approach: before putting pen to paper she visited most of the Slav centers in the United States and also did research for a year in those regions of Austria-Hungary from which many of the immigrants came. Not content to rely on verbal or written sources, she felt she had to see things for herself, to meet these peopl e, and to study their conditions at first hand.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 790: Emily Balch probably did not realize – and few did at that time – that 1914 was, more than 1939, the great turning point of our era. It marked the end of an epoch, and subsequent events have, in many ways, robbed peopl e of their faith in the individual and in justice, which have been the heritage and the source of strength for the best in this world. Men have grown harder since then, more skeptical, and the doctrine that might is right has found its way increasingly into both internal and external policies, even after the end of this last war.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 821: Mott and a colleague were offered free passage on the Titanic in 1912 by a White Star Line official who was interested in their work, but they declined and took the more humble liner the SS Lapl and. According to a biography by C. Howard Hopkins, upon hearing of the news in New York City, the two men looked at each other and remarked that, "The Good Lord must have more work for us to do."
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 829: Few men have traveled in so many countries, spoken to so many peopl e, and inspired so much confidence as has John Mott.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 833: He was never an American bringing an evangelical message to Poland, to South America, or to the East, in an American style. He was an apostle of a simpl e Christianity, presented in a form which made it living and real to the peopl e to whom it was addressed. God is our Father, he said. But if God is our Father, then we are all brothers (or sisters? 😃 ) , and no frontiers or racial divisions can separate us from each other. Hmm... the first brethren were Cain and and Abel...)
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 837: His simpl e preaching was a source of strength and inspiration to those whom he addressed or with whom he talked; his powerful tinselfish and his noble character won him friends and followers and opened the way for brotherhood between nations under the banner of Christ – always the central theme of his preaching.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 839: From Wikipedia, the free encyclopedia: The Grammicolepididae are a small family of deep-sea fishes, called tinselfishes due to their silvery color. They are related to the dories, and have similar deepl y compressed bodies. The largest species, the thorny tinselfish, Grammicolepis brachiusculus, grows up to 64 cm (25 in) long.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 845: We Christian students, states one such resolution, believe in the fundamental equality of all races and nations, and we consider it a part of our Christian duty to give expression to this principl e in our relations with peopl e. We also believe it to be our absolute duty to use all our efforts to combat everything which can lead to war and to combat war itself as a means of resolving international disputes.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 29: We have to talk about Kevin play:none">Toxisia penseitä
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 95: pload//w_1199,h_1799,f_auto,fl_lossy,q_auto:eco/13-3-11891168.jpg" width="20%" />
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 122: – Se, että pitäydytään puhumasta joistakin asioista ja valitaan hiljaisuus, on jo uhka sinänsä. Minua esimerkiksi ihmetyttää, että vaikka ilmastonmuutoksen ja muiden tätä pl aneettaa vaivaavien ongelmien perimmäinen syy on liiallinen väestönkasvu, tämä asia yleensä vaietaan kuoliaaksi, Krohn toteaa. No niin, Leena on myös äskettäin toiseen palveluun eli hiljaisten tiimiin siirtyneen munatotin ystävän linjoilla, siis sen professorinpoika koulupudokkaan ekofasistin (Pentti Linkola).
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 138: Helsingissä on lähiö, joka loistaa koronakartalla yksinäisenä punaisena täpl änä, ja se on ihasteltu Roihuvuori – mitä siellä oikein tapahtuu? No siellä on aivan helvatisti pedofiilejä transuneekereitä ja poliittisia islamisteja.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 151: Drivel was born Margaret Ann Shriver on May 18, 1957, in Gastonia, North Carolina, to a deepl y religious family. Her father, Donald, is a Presbyterian minister, who became an academic and president of the Union Theological Seminary in New York; her mother, Peggy, was a homemaker who shook her moneymaker. She also has an older brother, Gregory, and a younger brother, Tim. At age 15, she changed her name from Margaret Ann to Lionel because she did not like the name she had been given, and as a tomboy (well, wannabe transsexual) felt a conventionally male name more appropriate.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 158: We Need to Talk About Kevin was awarded the 2005 Agent Orange Prize. The novel is a study of maternal ambivalence, and the role it might have pl ayed in the title character's decision to murder only nine peopl e at his high school. Gharbi got a significantly higher body count, but then his mother was more supportive. It provoked much controversy and achieved success through word of mouth. She said this about We Need To Talk About Kevin becoming a success:
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 160: I'm often asked did something happen around the time I wrote Kevin. Did I have some revelation or transsexual operation? The truth is that Kevin is of a piece with my other work. There's nothing special about Kevin. The other books are good too, go and buy them! It just tripped over an issue that was just ripe for expl oration and by some miracle found its audience. School killings having come into vogue helped of course.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 162: Drivel has written drivel for The Wall Street Journal, the Financial Times, The New York Times, The Economist and many other suspect economically liberal publications. In July 2005, Shriver began writing a column for The Guardian, in which she shared her low opinion on maternal wards within Western society, the pettiness of British tax authorities, and the importance of libraries (she pl ans to hide whatever assets remain at her death in the Belfast Library).
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 185: When photos of the party circulated on social media, campus-wide outrage ensued. Administrators sent multipl e emails to the “culprits” threatening an investigation into an “act of ethnic stereotyping.” Partygoers were pl aced on “social probation,” while the two hosts were ejected from their dorm and later impeached. Bowdoin’s student newspaper decried the attendees’ lack of “basic empathy.” I wonder what that meant. Must look up the word in the dictionary someday.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 190: Now, I am a little at a loss to expl ain what’s so insulting about a sombrero – a practical piece of headgear for a hot climate that keeps out the sun with a wide brim. And what's so insulting about shackles - a practical way to keep a cotton worker focused on his work. My parents went to Mexico when I was small, and brought a sombrero back from their travels, the better for my brothers and I to unashamedly appropriate the souvenir to pl ay dress-up. For my part, as a German-American on both sides, I’m more than happy for anyone who doesn’t share my genetic pedigree to don a Tyrolean hat, pull on some leiderhosen, pour themselves a weisbier, and belt out the Hoffbrauhaus Song. (Leiderhosen? weisbier? Damn what ignoramus. But she is American, remember. Donald Trump is an expatriate German too. Hitler was an expatriate Austrian. Bet he had a Tirolean hat, a green one like aunt Inkeri.)
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 193: But what does this have to do with writing fiction? The moral of the sombrero scandals is clear: you’re not supposed to try on other peopl e’s hats. Yet that’s what we’re paid to do, isn’t it? Step into other peopl e’s shoes, and try on their hats. Try their underwear for size. Make fun of them when they don't say Calvin Klein, or have skidmarks on them.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 194: In the latest ethos, which has spun well beyond college campuses in short order, any tradition, any experience, any costume, any way of doing and saying things, that is associated with a minority or disadvantaged group is ring-fenced: look-but-don’t-touch. Those who embrace a vast range of “identities” – ethnicities, nationalities, races, sexual and gender categories, classes of economic under-privilege and disability – are now encouraged to be possessive of their experience and to regard other peopl es’ attempts to participate in their lives and traditions, either actively or imaginatively, or just for laughs, as a form of theft.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 198: In his masterwork English Passengers, Matthew Kneale would have restrained himself from including chapters written in an Aboriginal’s voice – though these are some of the richest, most compelling passages in that novel. If Dalton Trumbo had been scared off of describing being trapped in a body with no arms, legs, or face because he was not personally disabled – because he had not been through a World War I maiming himself and therefore had no right to “appropriate” the isolation of a parapl egic – we wouldn’t have the haunting 1938 classic, Johnny Got His Gun, unless he had written it with a pen in his arse. (Never heard of any of these masterpieces, but then I hadn't heard of Drivel or Kevin either until today.)
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 203: What strikes me about that definition is that “without permission” bit. However are we fiction writers to seek “permission” to use a character from another race or culture, or to empl oy the vernacular of a group to which we don’t belong? Do we set up a stand on the corner and approach passers-by with a clipboard, getting signatures that grant limited rights to empl oy an Indonesian character in Chapter Twelve, the way political volunteers get a candidate on the ballot? Anyway, do you really expect us Americans to seek permission from any of those lower races? Did we do so when we appropriated their land and property?
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 205: I am hopeful that the concept of “cultural appropriation” is a passing fad: rubbing peopl e with different backgrounds against each other and exchanging our flaky ideas and shady practices against their money is self-evidently one of the most productive, fascinating aspects of modern urban life.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 208: Seriously, we have peopl e questioning whether it’s appropriate for white peopl e to eat pad Thai. In fact we have peopl e questioning whether white peopl e should even exist. Like who needs chauvinist Yankee female pigs who have changed their first names to more toxic ones.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 212: Seriously folks, we have peopl e questioning whether it’s appropriate for white peopl e to eat pad Thai. (Oh, I read that bit already, Sorry. Ok I was here:) Turnabout, then: I guess that means that as a native of North Carolina, I can ban the Thais from eating barbecue. (I bet they’d swap.) (What? Swap what? Barbecue is really icky gooey meaty stuff, only North Carolinans can like that.)
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 214: This same sensibility is coming to a bookstore near you. Because who is the appropriator par excellence, really? Who assumes other peopl e’s voices, accents, patois, and distinctive idioms? Who literally puts words into the mouths of peopl e different from themselves? Who dares to get inside the very heads of strangers, who has the chutzpah to project thoughts and feelings into the minds of others, who steals their very souls? Who is a professional kidnapper? Who swipes every sight, smell, sensation, or overheard conversation like a kid in a candy store, and sometimes take notes the better to purloin whole worlds? Who is the premier pickpocket of the arts? The fiction writer, that’s who. Yes, she is a real piece of shit more often than not. I know, I've been there.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 218: As for the culture police’s obsession with “authenticity,” fiction is inherently inauthentic. It’s fake. It’s self-confessedly fake; that is the nature of the form, which is about peopl e who don’t exist and events that didn’t happen. The name of the game is not whether your novel honours reality; it’s all about what you can get away with. Well mine is anyway, I don't know about you. I try to get away with anything that is not nailed or welded fast.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 221: But in principl e, I admire his courage – if only because he invited this kind of ethical forensics in a review out of San Francisco: “When a white male author writes as a young Nigerian girl, is it an act of empathy, or identity theft?” the reviewer asked. “When an author pretends to be someone he is not, he does it to tell a story outside of his own experiential range. But he has to in turn be careful that he is representing his characters, not using them for his pl ot.” Depends on who gets the money, I'd say. Chris Cleave hardly gave it all away to poor Nigerian gals.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 223: Hold it. OK, he’s necessarily “representing” his characters, by portraying them on the page. But of course he’s using them for his pl ot! How could he not? They are his characters, to be manipulated at his whim, to fulfill whatever purpose he cares to put them to.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 224: This same reviewer recapitulated Cleave’s obligation “to show that he’s representing [the girl], rather than expl oiting her.” Again, a false dichotomy. Unlike Kingsley Amis and his dad, we well-to-do white Americans can do both. America is a representative democracy, after all. We represent, y'all just stick to picking the cotton.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 226: Of course he’s expl oiting her. It’s his book, and he made her up. He owns her, she is her property. He is free to fuck her, rape her, do whatever he wants. The character is his creature, to be expl oited up a storm. Yet the reviewer chides that “special care should be taken with a story that’s not impl icitly yours to tell” and worries that “Cleave pushes his own boundaries maybe further than they were meant to go.”
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 227: What stories are “impl icitly ours to tell,” and what boundaries around our own lives are we mandated to remain within? I would argue that any story you can steal is yours to tell, and trying to push the boundaries of the author’s personal experience by usurping other peopl e's is part of a fiction writer’s job. At least of drivelists like me.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 229: I’m hoping that crime writers, for exampl e, don’t all have personal experience of committing murder. Me, I’ve depicted a high school killing spree, and I hate to break it to you: I’ve never shot fatal arrows through seven kids, a teacher, and a cafeteria worker, either. We make things up, we chance our arms, sometimes we do a little research, but in the end it’s still about what we can get away with – what we can put over on our readers. And it is surprisingly easy, you wouldnt believe what the idiots are ready to swallow, especially if it agrees with their own prejudice.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 233: And here’s the bugbear, here’s where we really can’t win. At the same time that we’re to write about only the few toys that landed in our pl aypen, we’re also upbraided for failing to portray in our fiction a population that is sufficiently various.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 235: My most recent novel The Mandibles was taken to task by one reviewer for addressing an America that is “straight and white”. It happens that this is a multigenerational family saga – about a white family. I wasn’t instinctively inclined to insert a transvestite or bisexual, with issues that might distract from my central subject matter of apocalyptic economics. Yet the impl ication of this criticism is that we novelists need to pl ug in representatives of a variety of groups in our cast of characters, as if filling out the entering class of freshmen at a university with strict diversity requirements. Besides, America IS straight and white, at least the America I know about. I haven't had time to appropriate any Nigerian girls yet, nor Afro Americans even.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 237: You do indeed see just this brand of tokenism in television. There was a point in the latter 1990s at which suddenly every sitcom and drama in sight had to have a gay or lesbian character or coupl e. That was good news as a voucher of the success of the gay rights movement, but it still grew a bit tiresome: look at us, our show is so hip, one of the characters is homosexual! It is SOOO tiresome, why can't we just watch the superbly funny middle class straight white Americans instead?
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 242: Besides: which is it to be? We have to tend our own gardens, and only write about ourselves or peopl e just like us because we mustn’t pilfer others’ experience, or we have to peopl e our cast like an I’d like to teach the world to sing Coca-Cola advert?
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 243: For it can be dangerous these days to go the diversity route. Especially since there seems to be a consensus on the notion that San Francisco reviewer put forward that “special care should be taken with a story that’s not impl icitly yours to tell.” Why on earth? Isn't it just the opposite? If it is somebody else's story you are free to do whatever you want, since you don't know it, so you can give free reins to your imagination! Chances are your all-white panel don't know the peopl e either, so anything goes.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 248: Behold, the reviewer in the Washington Post, who groundlessly accused this book of being “racist” because it doesn’t toe a strict Democratic Party line in its political outlook, described the scene thus: “The Mandibles are white. Luella, the single African American in the family, arrives in Brooklyn incontinent and demented. She needs to be physically restrained. As their fortunes become ever more dire and the family assembles for a perilous trek through the streets of lawless New York, she’s held at the end of a leash. If The Mandibles is ever made into a film, my suggestion is that this image not be empl oyed for the movie poster.” Your author, by impl ication, yearns to bring back slavery. Failing that, she does the best to poke fictive fun at a fictive member of the underprivileged race. Nobody laugh?
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 250: Thus in the world of identity politics, fiction writers better be careful. If we do choose to import representatives of protected groups, special rules appl y. If a character happens to be black, they have to be treated with kid gloves, and never be pl aced in scenes that, taken out of context, might seem disrespectful. But that’s no way to write. We know that most criminals are black anyway, and many if not most blacks are criminal. Writing to hide that fact would be writing fiction, and we fiction writers have your responsibility toward the white audience. The burden is too great, the self-examination paralysing. The natural result of that kind of criticism in the Post is that next time I don’t use any black characters, lest they do or say anything that is short of perfectly admirable and lovely. (No ei munkaan olis pitänyt alottaa tätä albumia, jossa haukutaan törkimyxiä jotka sattuu olemaan naisia. Äkkiä se kääntyyy naisten haukkumisexi sillä tekosyyllä, että ne sattuu olemaan törkimyxiä. Ehkä se onkin sitä!)
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 252: In fact, I’m reminded of a letter I received in relation to my seventh novel from an Armenian-American who objected – why did I have to make the narrator of We Need to Talk About Kevin Armenian? He didn’t like my narrator, and felt that her ethnicity disparaged his community. I took pains to expl ain that I knew something about Armenian heritage, because my best friend in the States was Armenian, and I also thought there was something dark and aggrieved in the culture of the Armenian diaspora that was atmospherically germane to that book. Besides, I despaired, everyone in the US has an ethnic background of some sort, and she had to be something! Joe Biden has finally admitted that the Armenian genocide was a genocide and not just an unusually bad case of flu. I am not convinced of it yet.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 255: I confess that this climate of scrutiny has got under my lucidly white skin. When I was first starting out as a novelist, I didn’t hesitate to write black characters, for exampl e, or to avail myself of black dialects, for which, having grown up in the American South, I had a pretty good ear. I am now much more anxious about depicting characters of different races, and accents make me nervous. I try my best to talk average middle class American, but occasionally a few bits of North Carolina slip out. Sorry about that. Here's how I'd sound if I din't steal from anyone but the likes of me:
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 257: I’m from a small rural community, and ev’rybody who lived in my neighborhood, if you want to call it that, were relatives. We called it “the circle,” and our house was there, my grandmother’s house was there, an aun’ an’ uncle who were childless lived there, and (uh) a coupl e of aunts an’ uncles who had children. There were five female cousins, an’ in the summertime we hung out together all day long from early until late. In my grandmother’s yard was a mapl e tree, and the five of us developed that into our apartment building. Each of us had a limb, and [small laugh] the less daring cousins took the lo’er limbs, and I and another cousin a year younger than I always went as far to the top as we could, an’ we– we were kinda derisive of those girls who stayed with the lower limbs. We had front doors an’ back doors. The front door was the — the limb — were the limbs on the front, that were nearest (um) the boxwood hedge. And the grass was all worn away in that area. An’ then the back doorwa–was on the back side of the tree, an’ you could only enter the front an’ exit from the rear. And that had to be done by swinging off a limb that was fairly high off the ground, and (um) my cousin Belinda and I had no problem with that, but the other girls — that was always somethin’ we had to coax them into doin’. But still, you entered the front, you left the rear. We (um) ate our lunches together. When it was lunchtime — an’ our mothers always cooked lunch in the summertime ’cause they didn’ want to be in the hot kitchen at night. So we would just take our (um) — go home, an’ we’d load our pl ates with all the vegetables an’ the cornbread, an’ get our glasses of milk or ice tea or whatever we were havin’, an’ we would head for somebody’s yard, where we would all sit down an’ eat together. It was just an institution: lunch in somebody’s yard. An’ if you wanted to go home for a second helping– sometimes that was quite a little walk, but it was worth it, because that was our thing, having lunch together, every day. (Um) We gathered at my grandmother’s on Sundays. All my aunts would get those chairs, form a circle. (Uh) One crocheted. (Uh) Most of them just sat an’ talked, an’ we girls hung out for the main part with the women. (Uh) The men would gather around the fish pond, which was in a side yard. It was (um) — it was kind of a rock (um) pond that my granddaddy had, had built. There was a ir’n pipe in the middle, an’ when he went fishin’, he would put his catch in there. Or he caught a mud turtle, he’d put it in there. An’ there it stayed until it was time to kill it an’ cook it, whatever it was. The pipe in the middle had water that sprayed up all the time. There was a locust tree near there, an’ that’s where we girls picked the leaves an’ the thorns to make the doll clothes out o’ the locust. It’s where we always ate the watermelon. We always had to save the rind, an’ we always had to leave some pink on that rind, because my grandmother made watermelon pickles out o’ that rind. I hated the things. I thought they were the worst things I ever put in my mouth. But ever’body else thought watermelon pickles were just a great delicacy. That was also around the time that ev’rybody grew gladiolias [sic] an’ I thought they were the ugliest flower I’d ever laid my eyes on, but ever’body had gladiolias. ‘Course now I’ve come to appreciate the gladiolia, but back then I had absolutely no appreciation for it. It was also where we made (uh) ice cream, (uh) on the front porch. We made ice cream on Sunday afternoons. I had an aunt who worked in the general mercantile business that my family owned, an’ she was only home on Sunday, so she baked all day: homemade rolls an’ cakes. And so, she made cakes an’ we made ice cream, an’ ever’body wan’ed to crank, of course. (Um) That was just a big treat, to get to crank that ice cream. It was jus’ our Sunday afternoon thing, an’ I, I think back on it. All the aunts would sit around an’ they’d talk, an’ they’d smoke. Even if you never saw those ladies smoke, any other time o’ the week. On Sunday afternoon when we all were gathered about in gran- in granny’s yard, they’d have a cigarette. Just a way of relaxing, I suppose. The mapl e tree’s now gone. In later years, it was thought the mapl e tree, our apartment building, was shading the house too much an’ causing mildew, so it was removed at some point. And I don’t, to this day, enjoy lookin’ (uh) into that part o’ the yard. …
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 260: In describing a second-generation Mexican American who’s married to one of my main characters in The Mandibles, I took care to write his dialogue in standard American English, to specify that he spoke without an accent, and to expl ain that he only dropped Spanish expressions tongue-in-cheek. I would certainly think twice – more than twice – about ever writing a whole novel, or even a goodly chunk of one, from the perspective of a character whose race is different from my own – because I may sell myself as an iconoclast, but I’m as anxious as the next person about attracting big money. But I think that’s a loss. I think that indicates a contraction of my fictional universe that is not good for the books, and not good for my purse.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 266: Worse: the left’s embrace of gotcha hypersensitivity inevitably invites backlash. Donald Trump appeals to peopl e like me who have had it up to their eyeballs with being told what they can and cannot say. Pushing back against a mainstream culture of speak-no-evil suppression, they lash out in defiance, and then what they say is pretty appalling. I actually think President Trump is a real cool guy. Especially I love his hair, it most definitely is not black and curly like that other president's.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 268: Regarding identity politics, what’s especially saddened me in my recent career is a trend toward rejecting the advocacy of anyone who does not belong to the group. In 2013, I published Big Brother, a novel that grew out of my loss of my own older brother, who in 2009 died from the compl ications of morbid obesity. I was moved to write the book not only from grief, but also sympathy of morbid obesity: in the years before his death, as my brother grew heavier, I saw how dreadfully other peopl e treated him – how he would be seated off in a corner of a restaurant, how the staff would roll their eyes at each other after he’d ordered, though he hadn’t requested more food than anyone else. Just a little wafer, is all.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 270: I was wildly impatient with the way we assess peopl e’s characters these days in accordance with their weight, and tried to get on the page my dismay at how much energy peopl e waste on this matter, sometimes anguishing for years over a few excess pounds. Both author and book were on the side of the angels, or so you would think.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 272: But in my events to promote Big Brother, like trying to peddle it to my acquaintances, I started to notice a pattern. Most of the peopl e buying the book in the signing queue were thin. Well the whole queue was pretty thin. Especially in the US, fat is now one of those issues where you either have to be one of us, or you’re the enemy. It's like Christianity: who is not for Jesus is against him. We don't know if he was fat, but most likely he was scrawny, he could not even carry his cross. I verified this when I had a long email correspondence with a “Healthy at Any Size” activist, who was incensed by the novel, which she hadn’t even read. Which she refused to read. No amount of expl aining that the novel was on her side, that it was a book that was terribly pained by the way heavy peopl e are treated and how unfairly they are judged, could overcome the scrawny author’s photo on the flap.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 281: I reviewed a novel recently that I had regretfully to give a thumbs-down, though it was terribly well intended; its heart was in the right pl ace. But in relating the Chinese immigrant experience in America, the author put forward characters that were mostly Chinese. That is, that’s sort of all they were: Chinese. Which isn’t enough. They ought to be specifically American Chinese immigrants, believers in the American Dream. That would have fattened them out.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 283: I made this same point in relation to gender in Melbourne last week: both as writers and as peopl e, we should be seeking to push beyond the constraining categories into which we have been arbitrarily dropped by birth. If we embrace narrow group-based identities too fiercely, we cling to the very cages in which others would seek to trap us. We pigeonhole ourselves. We limit our own notion of who we are, and in presenting ourselves as one of a membership, a representative of our type, an ambassador of an amalgam, we ask not to be seen. I have done my best to stretch my female identity, and after years of strenuous stretching it is in fact almost as long already as that of my drummer boy's.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 288: The spirit of good fiction is one of expl oration, generosity, curiosity, audacity, and compassion. Writing during the day and reading when I go to bed at night, I find it an enormous relief to escape the confines of my own head. Even if novels and short stories only do so by creating an illusion, fiction helps to fell the exasperating barriers between us, and for a short while allows us to behold the astonishing reality of other peopl e. And it really is astonishing what the other peopl e do, at least the way I see it.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 290: The last thing we fiction writers need is restrictions on what belongs to us. In a recent interview, our colleague Chris Cleave conceded, “Do I as an Englishman have any right to write a story of a Nigerian woman? … I compl etely sympathise with the peopl e who say I have no right to do this. My only excuse is that I do it well.”
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 294: Halfway through the novel, suddenly my protagonist has lost the right leg instead of the left one. My idea of lesbian sex is drawn from wooden internet porn. Efforts to persuasively enter the lives of others very different from us may fail: that’s a given. But maybe rather than having our heads taken off, we should get a few bucks for trying. After all, most fiction sucks. Most writing sucks. Mine does anyway. Most things that peopl e make of any sort suck. But that doesn’t mean we shouldn’t make anything. Or that we should not suck. I do, however badly, and my drummer boy loves it.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 305: Lionel Shriver’s real targets were cultural appropriation, identity politics and political correctness. It was a monologue about the right to expl oit the stories of “others”, simpl y because it is useful for one’s story.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 315: The faces around me blurred. As my heels thudded against they grey pl astic of the flooring, harmonising with the beat of the adrenaline pumping through my veins, my mind was blank save for one question.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 323: There is a fascinating philosophical argument here. Instead, however, that core question was used as a straw man. Shriver’s real targets were cultural appropriation, identity politics and political correctness. It was a monologue about the right to expl oit the stories of “others”, simpl y because it is useful for one’s story.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 328: The audience, compl iant, chuckled. I started looking forward to the point in the speech where she was to subvert the argument. It never came.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 329: On and on it went. Rather than focus on the ultimate question around how we can know an experience we have not had, the argument became a tirade. It became about the fact that a white man should be able to write the experience of a young Nigerian woman and if he sells millions and does a “decent” job — in the eyes of a white woman — he should not be questioned or pilloried in any way. It became about mocking those who ask peopl e to seek permission to use their stories. It became a celebration of the unfettered expl oitation of the experiences of others, under the guise of fiction. (For more, Yen-Rong, a volunteer at the festival, wrote a summary on her personal blog about it.)
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 332: As the chuckles of the audience swelled around me, reinforcing and legitimising the words coming from behind the lectern, I breathed in deepl y, trying to make sense of what I was hearing. The stench of privilege hung heavy in the air, and I was reminded of my “pl ace” in the world.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 337: I can’t speak for the LGBTQI community, those who are neuro-different or peopl e with disabilities, but that’s also the point. I don’t speak for them, and should allow for their voices and experiences to be heard and legitimised.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 339: But there is a bigger and broader issue, one that, for me, is more emotive. Cultural appropriation is a “thing”, because of our histories. The history of colonisation, where everything was taken from a peopl e, the world over. Land, wealth, dignity … and now identity is to be taken as well?
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 341: In making light of the need to hold onto any vestige of identity, Shriver compl etely disregards not only history, but current reality. The reality is that those from marginalised groups, even today, do not get the luxury of defining their own pl ace in a norm that is profoundly white, straight and, often, patriarchal. And in demanding that the right to identity should be given up, Shriver epitomised the kind of attitude that led to the normalisation of imperialist, colonial rule: “I want this, and therefore I shall take it.”
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 343: The attitude drips of racial supremacy, and the impl ication is clear: “I don’t care what you deem is important or sacred. I want to do with it what I will. Your experience is simpl y a tool for me to use, because you are less human than me. You are less than human…”
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 346: My own mother, as we walked away from the tent, suggested that perhaps I was being too sensitive. Perhaps … or perhaps that is the result of decades of being told to be quiet, and accept our pl ace. So our conversation then turned to intent. What was Shriver’s intent when she chose to discuss her distaste for the concept of cultural appropriation? Was it to build bridges, to further our intellect, to broaden horizons of what is possible?
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 349: The kind of disrespect for others infused in Lionel Shriver’s keynote is the same force that sees peopl e vote for Pauline Hanson. It’s the reason our First Peopl es are still fighting for recognition, and it’s the reason we continue to stomach offshore immigration prisons. It’s the kind of attitude that lays the foundation for prejudice, for hate, for genocide.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 351: The fact Shriver was given such a prominent pl atform from which to spew such vitriol shows that we as a society still value this type of rhetoric enough to deem it worthy of a keynote address. The opening of a city’s writers festival could have been graced by any of the brilliant writers and thinkers who challenge us to be more. To be uncomfortable. To progress.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 353: A Maxine Beneba Clarke, who opened the Melbourne Writers’ Festival by challenging us to learn how to talk about race in a way that was melodic and powerful. A Stan Grant, who will ask us why we continue to allow our First Peopl e’s to wallow in inhumane conditions. An A.C. Grayling, if you really want the international flavour. Anyone who will ask us to be better, not demand we be OK with worse.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 365: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5d/J._K._Rowling_2010.jpg/800px-J._K._Rowling_2010.jpg" width="20%" />
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 392: Pian Rowling tuli taas raskaaksi ja työskenteli aikaisempaa enemmän Potter-luonnostensa parissa. Lapsi syntyi 27. heinäkuuta 1993 ja sai nimekseen Jessica. Rowlingin ja Arantesin avioliitto oli kuitenkin varsin huonossa tilassa – riitoja oli paljon. Lopulta marraskuussa tilanne kärjistyi niin pitkälle, että Arantes heitti vaimonsa ulos kadulle. Enpä yhtään ihmettele, oisin mäkin varmaan tehnyt samoin jos oisin uskaltanut. Rowling pääsi vähäksi aikaa ystäviensä luokse, "sai" (jollain brittitykkivenedipl omatialla varmaan) tyttärensä Arantesin luota ja palasi Isoon-Britanniaan.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 431: JK Rowling took another tossing on Twitter on Sunday as she tweeted that “many health professionals are concerned that young peopl e struggling with their mental health are being shunted towards hormones and surgery when this may not be in their best interests.”
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 435: Two big Harry Potter fan sites, unhappy over author J.K. Rowling’s views on transgender peopl e, said today they will no longer provide links to her personal website, use photos of her, or write about her outside of her role in creating the fantasy world they love.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 436: Rowling had barfed harmful and disproven beliefs about what it means to be a transgender person.” Her views on “marginalised peopl e are out of step with the Harry Potter community, and more in line with the Voldemort community.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 438: Our stance is firm: transgender women are women,” said the statement by the fan sites. “Transgender men are men. Non-binary peopl e are non-binary. Intersex peopl e exist and should not be forced to live in the binary. We stand with Harry Potter fans in these communities. While we don’t condone the mistreatment [Rowling] has received for airing her opinions about transgender peopl e, we must reject her beliefs.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 442: Rowling issued a personal essay last month in an attempt to expl ain her attacks on transgender rights. She asserted that transgender activists were dangerous to women.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 443: “Who had money on JK Rowling pivoting to supporting those who call peopl e who take mental health medication “lazy?” wrote one critic Sunday. I had. But as luck would have it, she has more of it. In fact, she is full of it.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 488: Urban Outfitters is a multinational lifestyle retail corporation headquartered in Philadelphia, Pennsylvania. They also own Anthropologie and Free Peopl e.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 497: "Child labor and forced labor have no pl ace in a developed and civilized society." Fuck of course they do! And an all-important one! However else could us monkeys in the West afford to buy new dirt cheap fashion rags every time we round the shops? What would civilized society be without trendy fashion clothes? Are we some kind of apes that use the same fur year in year out? No way Jose!
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 507: Doonesbury sarjakuvaa ei muista kukaan, varsinkaan sen jälkeen kun Gary Trudeau (ihan aiheesta) 2015 kritisoi Charlie Hebdon piirtäjiä "for punching downward..., attacking a powerless, disenfranchised minority with crude, vulgar drawings closer to graffiti than cartoons", and thereby wandering "into the realm of hate speech" with cartoons of Muhammad. Muiden pöyristyneiden öykkärien joukossa joku paska David Frum "criticized what he called Trudeau's moral theory that holds "the privilege-bearer responsible". Eihän se nyt käy, privilege on privilege, Mariallakin oli sellainen, eikä sitä siltäkään otettu pois. Rääppä humanistiystävineen piti rinnassa "Je suis Charlie" läppyjä. Charlie Chapl in lie ollut kyseessä.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 520: ploads/2018/12/kathie-lee-gifford-to-exit-today-show.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 524: Kathie Lee married Paul Johnson, a composer/arranger/producer/publisher of Christian music, in 1976. After their divorce in 1982, she married sportscaster and former NFL pl ayer Frank Gifford in 1986. He died in 2015. Kathie Lee has released studio albums and written books. Kathie Lee has sold clothes made in offshore sweatshops whose living and working conditions were simpl y inhumane.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 528: Gifford's paternal grandfather was a Russian Jew from Saint Petersburg and her paternal grandmother had Native American ancestry. Her mother, a relative of writer Rudyard Kipl ing, was of French Canadian, German and English descent.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 537: In 1996 the National Labor Committee, a human rights group, reported that sweatshop labor was being used to make clothes for the Kathie Lee line, sold at Wal-Mart. The group reported that a worker in Honduras smuggled a piece of clothing out of the factory, which had a Kathie Lee label on it. One of the workers, Wendy Diaz, came to the United States to testify about the conditions under which she worked. She commented, "I wish I could talk to Kathie Lee. If she's good, she will help us." Gifford addressed Kernaghan's allegations on the air during Live! with Regis and Kathie Lee, expl aining that she was not personally involved with hands-on project management in factories, and had never made a piece of clothing in her life.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 557: The primary environmental criticism following Nike has been its refusal to eliminate hazardous materials from its suppl y chain.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 577: Key quote: “Excited to participate in the first #TalksForFuture tomorrow, a pl an hatched by @GretaThunberg and other young climate strikers who are unable to engage in their usual Friday demonstrations,” Naomi Klein tweeted on Thursday in support of the initiative.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 591: What else is new? Rana Plazan hikipajatehdas pl äzähti 8v sitten Bangladeshissä.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 607: Should I flush myself down the toilet now? YES, pl ease do.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 621: Yliopistojen alihankkijoille asettamia "tiukkoja ehtoja" olivat: minimipalkka (ei elämiseen riittävä), työturvallisuus ja ammattiliitot, pl us avoimet ovet tarkastajille. Tähän brändivalmistajat eivät voineet "millään" suostua. Niiden liikesalaisuudet paljastuvat, nimittäin salailu, vastuunpakoilu ja militarismi.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 624: Globaalin pl utokratian ote Pepi raukan kurkusta millenniumin vaihteessa vaan koveni. Jenkit tuomizi Uuden Englannnin boikottilait perustuslain vastasixi, ja EU urputti että WTO:n säännöt estävät poliittiset kaupan rajotuxet (paizi tietysti länkkärien omat pakotteet). Älkää häiritkö meitä kun me kähmitään!
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 29: Iltaan mennessä selkenevää play:none">Hulluttelua
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 36: Johnny Nash was responsible for multipl e equations and mathematical breakthroughs that influenced everything from economics to geometry. Like Nash equilibrium in game theory, one of the worst ideas an ape ever stumbled on. In addition to being a genius intellectual and genius mathematician he also suffered from schizophrenia his entire adult life. Not to put too find a point to it, he was mad as a march hare.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 80: The compl ete listing of DSM-5 chapters is:
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 142: Impulsive choices and behaviors that may result in risky behavior, such as gambling, shopping sprees, or engaging in unprotected sex with multipl e partners.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 253: Funny thing is, nobody knows why neurotransmitters are of a different level for peopl e with "schizophrenia" and blame it on this label. Those with such illnesses were not always measured for levels of neurotransmitters, they were only assumed to have such levels of neurotransmitters by the psychiatrist who has no real medical background like that of a surgeon. To worsen it, Earthling's medical science has yet to be able to measure these levels accurately and safely! Isn't this shocking?
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 261: This is easily proven if you can conduct human trials the correct way. This requires a deep understanding of how the body works first… including how neurotransmitters work in an overall POV, which includes knowledge of the brain, the body, the nervous system, the neurons and finally why Homeostasis is always correct. The way your education system works limits your view because you only study within your specialization. You need to become a overall learner across various discipl ines to find Truths. Because the Creator is someone who knows literally EVERYTHING!
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 296: POV Peopl e of Value
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 311: POV Peopl e on Video
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 335: POV Peopl e Of Venezuela
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 336: POV Peopl e on Verge
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 353: All these will be discovered by your scientists one day if your kind is open to new information. These new information are just facts waiting to be proven and to be accepted by your mainstream. Proving is easy, spreading them to the rigid minds of peopl e is hard! This message is for an intended audience only.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 416: Mä pidän aivojani kaatopaikkana jonne tuodaan kaikki turha; millä ei enään tee mitään. Mut joskus sieltä löytyy todellinen helmi; vanha putkiradio tai telkkari jonka voi korjata.. Turhaa informaatiota tulee joka tuutista -niin et sekoo...no mä työstän sekavia filmin repl iikkejä kynän ja paperin kanssa.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 423: elehtien, että tupakkahuoneeseen. Tarulla on seitsemän uutta biisin sanaa joita hiomme. Ihan hyvää tavaraa, mut tän skitsofrenian loppu tyssää siihen, kun siinä puuttuu yksi kertosäe ja toisessa säkeistössä on yksi säe liikaa, joten tää on helppo homma laittaa toisen säkeistön ylimääräinen vajaaseen viimeiseen säkeistöön. Sitten kun paperiduuni on tehty mä ajattelen mennä pelaan pl eikkarilla GrandTurismoo, mut Taru repii mua hihasta kohti tupakkahuonetta treenaan seitsemää vajaassa tunnissa kirjoitettua Tarun Herkkää tekstiä -saimme sovitettua ne toimiviksi melodioiksi reilussa puolessa tunnissa. Taru on maanisempi kuin mä, ja se moittii mua laiskaksi -niin kuin aina. Mutta mä ymmärrän mitä se haluu ilmaista ja homma toimii hyvín.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 437: sä syöt pelkkiä tyhjiä kupl ia
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 453: Jonnen kans me ajetaan kilpaa rallia pl aikkarilla.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 454: Jonne on mua enemmän treenannut pl eikkarii, joten se on voittaja melkein joka kisassa - mä oon yleensä kolmas tai neljäs, mutta tokanakin oon ollut.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 467: Eli nyt nä pääsen pelaan pl eikkarii.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 468: Nyt pääsen pelaamaan pl eikkaria.... Ei tää arki täällä paljon poikkea normipäivästä. Vapaa-aikaa on ize asiassa enemmän, mikä luovan ammatin harjottajalle sopii hyvin.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 527: Albeit to different extents, the researchers expl ain, the nine negative personality traits are all based on a rooted tendency to prioritize one’s own well-being, pl easure, or success over those of others, even if it means others will have to suffer for it.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 657: Peopl e orientation
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 665: The Restructured Clinical scales were designed to be psychometrically improved versions of the original clinical scales, which were known to contain a high level of interscale correlation, overlapping items, and were confounded by the presence of an overarching factor that has since been extracted and pl aced in a separate scale (demoralization). The RC scales measure the core constructs of the original clinical scales.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 667: Critics of the RC scales assert they have deviated too far from the original clinical scales, the impl ication being that previous research done on the clinical scales will not be relevant to the interpretation of the RC scales. However, researchers on the RC scales assert that the RC scales predict pathology in their designated areas better than their concordant original clinical scales while using significantly fewer items and maintaining equal to higher internal consistency, reliability and validity; further, unlike the original clinical scales, the RC scales are not saturated with the primary factor (demoralization, now captured in RCdem) which frequently produced diffuse elevations and made interpretation of results difficult; finally, the RC scales have lower interscale correlations and, in contrast to the original clinical scales, contain no interscale item overlap.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 671: Critics of the new scales argue that the removal of this common variance makes the RC scales less ecologically valid (less like real life) because real patients tend to present compl ex patterns of symptoms.[citation needed] Proponents of the MMPI-2-RF argue that this potential problem is addressed by being able to view elevations on other RC scales that are less saturated with the general factor and, therefore, are also more transparent and much easier to interpret.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 684: A general measure of distress that is linked with anxiety, depression, helpl essness, hopelessness, low self-esteem, and a sense of inefficacy
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 689: Somatic Compl aints
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 690: Measures an individual's tendency to medically unexpl ainable physical symptoms
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 702: Measures a negative or overly-critical worldview that is associated with an increased likelihood of impaired interpersonal relationships, hostility, anger, low trust, and workpl ace misconduct
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 844: Oliko Jessus paha kun se rökitti rahanvaihtajia ja fariseuxia? Kävi tukkaan pahaa-aavistamattomia laillisia yrittäjiä? Oliko Pulkku paha kun se jätti teologian luvut kesken? Vai oliko se vaan hullu? Kirkko poisti kaavasta sanat "synnissä siinnyt". Oliko se paha vaiko hyvä? Tätä pohtii Uuden Suomen pl okissa "Jumalaton Sari":
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 905: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 937: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 1006: Miesten pl oki
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 1008: Kimmo Hoikkalan Uusi Suomi -pl okissa pääsevät miehet ääneen. Siellä ollaan ehkä hulluja muttei pahoja.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 1040: Mitä nämä pl okit nyt sitten totistavat? Joo Tauno, sen jo monasti havaitun seikan, että erilaisia apinoita on sormin laskettava lkm. Hulluus ja pahuus on apinoiden tekovikoja, joista hulluus on lievempi, koska siihen on lääkkeitä, pahuus pahempi, koska pahoja ei saada hyvix edes jauhamalla jyvix.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 1081: Ukko. Jos istutat viinipuuhun toisen puun oksan, mitenka kaypl .
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 1097: kieltäisi jos Ranssi menisi sanomaan. Emäntä joutui viikoksi tietonsa kanssa kahden. Siinä näytti tulevan tungos. Hän risteili pl han yli kuin lepakko, ruoka-aittaan, karjakeittiöön, navetalle,
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 1102: Just samasta reviirikotilon säilytyxestä ja meemiperinnöllisyydestä on tässä kymysys kuin kaikilla äveriäämmillä. Siis siitä homopl utiasta jonka serbihuippututkija ihmeexeen oli nähnyt tilastoissa vielä tai taas tänäkin päivänä. On se romanttista.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 28: Theory of Everything play:none">Kaiken teoriaa
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 33: Stephen Hawkingista (8 January 1942 – 14 March 2018) tuli iän karttuessa yhä enemmän Alienin näköinen. Nuoruudenkuvista päätellen se oli nenäkäs heppuli. Se kävi Highschool for Girls-nimistä koulua ja oli keskikastia. Sen kaverit löi karkkipussista vetoa ettei siitä tule koskaan mitään. Hyvä veto, parempi kuin sen oma veto mustasta aukosta. Tänään luin että Hawking oli vähällä kuolla Iranissa 1962 suuressa maanjäristyxessä. Sattumalta juuri tänään tehtiin iranilaista ash-e-reshteh nimistä papukeittoa. Onkohan tää joku viesti Stepheniltä pimeältä tähdeltä? Oisko siltä karannut jotain infoa? Et älä pilkkaa mun muistoa tai mä mukiloin sun sisältämän informaation? Mustista aukoista uhosi popl iinitakkinen Tofe Gefvert 70-luvulla mulle ja Eskille, mä en tiennyt yhtään mistä se messusi.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 46: General relativity also works perfectly well as a low-energy effective quantum field theory. For questions like the low-energy scattering of photons and gravitons, for instance, the Standard Model coupl ed to general relativity is a perfectly good theory. It only breaks down when you ask questions involving invariants of order the Planck scale, where it fails to be predictive; this is the problem of "nonrenormalizability."
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 48: Nonrenormalizability itself is no big deal; the Fermi theory of weak interactions was nonrenormalizable, but now we know how to compl ete it into a quantum theory involving W and Z bosons that is consistent at higher energies. So nonrenormalizability doesn't necessarily point to a contradiction in the theory; it merely means the theory is incompl ete.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 50: Gravity is more subtle, though: the real problem is not so much nonrenormalizability as high-energy behavior inconsistent with local quantum field theory. In quantum mechanics, if you want to probe physics at short distances, you can scatter particles at high energies. (You can think of this as being due to Heisenberg's uncertainty principl e, if you like, or just about properties of Fourier transforms where making localized wave packets requires the use of high frequencies.) By doing ever-higher-energy scattering experiments, you learn about physics at ever-shorter-length scales. (This is why we build the LHC to study physics at the attometer length scale.)
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 52: With gravity, this high-energy/short-distance correspondence breaks down. If you could collide two particles with center-of-mass energy much larger than the Planck scale, then when they collide their wave packets would contain more than the Planck energy localized in a Planck-length-sized region. This creates a black hole. If you scatter them at even higher energy, you would make an even bigger black hole, because the Schwarzschild radius grows with mass. So the harder you try to study shorter distances, the worse off you are: you make black holes that are bigger and bigger and swallow up ever-larger distances. No matter what compl etes general relativity to solve the renormalizability problem, the physics of large black holes will be dominated by the Einstein action, so we can make this statement even without knowing the full details of quantum gravity.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 60: Löysää puhetta Erkki. Älkää löpiskö! huutaisi Omppu vihaisesti luokalle. Harva kunnon tieteellinen kysymys on edes mixi-kysymys, useammin ne on miten-kysymyxiä. Noi on ainaskin helppo vastata: 1) Ei se nouse se vaan näyttää siltä kun maapallo pyörähtää. 2) Kenen mielestä? Yhden pahuus on toiselle hyvä asia. 3) Koska se irtoaa ja maa vetää sitä puoleensa. 4) Koska mikään maan päällä ei ole ikuista. (Tän todisti Stephen Hawking Penrosen avulla 1965. Penrosen matematiikka oli vielä laajempi kuin Hawkingin.) 5) Sitä ei löydy minun pipl iastani.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 84: Ex nihilo, nihil fit – is one of the propositions to which great significance was attributed in metaphysics. The proposition is either to be viewed as just a barren tautology, nothing is nothing, or, if becoming is supposed to have real meaning in it, then, since only nothing comes from nothing, there is in fact none in it, for the nothing remains nothing in it. Becoming entails that nothing not remain nothing, but that it pass over into its other, being. – Later metaphysics, especially the Christian, rejected the proposition that out of nothing comes nothing, thus asserting a transition from nothing into being; no matter how synthetically or merely imaginatively it took this proposition, there is yet even in the most incompl ete unification of being and nothing a point at which they meet, and their distinguishedness vanishes. –
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 85: The proposition, nothing comes from nothing, nothing is just nothing, owes its particular importance to its opposition to becoming in general and hence also to the creation of the world out of nothing. Those who zealously hold firm to the proposition, nothing is just nothing, are unaware that in so doing they are subscribing to the abstract pantheism of the Eleatics and essentially also to that of Spinoza. The philosophical view that accepts as principl e that being is only being, nothing only nothing, deserves the name of 'system of identity'; this abstract identity is the essence of pantheism. - Hegel , 'Becoming', in 'The Science of Logic', 1812. [Kay Sage, 'Arithmetic of Breaking Wind', 1947]
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 89: On the Fourfold Root of the Principl e of Sufficient Reason (German: Ueber die vierfache Wurzel des Satzes vom zureichenden Grunde) is an elaboration on the classical Principl e of Sufficient Reason, written by German philosopher Arthur Schopenhauer as his doctoral dissertation in 1813. The principl e of sufficient reason is a powerful and controversial philosophical principl e stipulating that everything must have a reason or cause. Schopenhauer revised and re-published it in 1847. The work articulated the centerpiece of many of Schopenhauer's arguments, and throughout his later works he consistently refers his readers to it as the necessary beginning point for a full understanding of his further writings.)
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 93: The Principl e of Reason, the text of an important and influential lecture course that Martin Heidegger gave in 1955-56, takes as its focal point Leibniz's principl e: nothing is without reason. Heidegger shows here that the principl e of reason is in fact a principl e of being. Much of his discussion is aimed at bringing his readers to the "leap of thinking," which enables them to grasp the principl e of reason as a principl e of being. This text presents Heidegger's most extensive reflection on the notion of history and its essence, the Geschick of being, which is considered on of the most important developments in Heidegger's later thought. One of Heidegger's most artfully composed texts, it also contains important discussions of language, translation, reason, objectivity, and technology as well as remarkable readings of Leibniz, Kant, Aristotle, and Goethe, among others. And lots of black-and-white pictures of scantily dressed women.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 108: V: Ennustaminen on vaikeaa, ja tulevaisuuden ennustaminen on erityisen vaikeaa, sanoi Ahti Karjalainen. Ize asiassa se ei ole vaikeaampaa kuin menneenkään, sillä jokainen päivä on uusi eilinen. Alkeelliset apinat koittaa käydä kauppaa pahansuopien jumalien kaa: anna sinä tää juttu ilmaisexi niin minä annan ilmaisexi uhreja ja läpyjä. Nykyajan jumalat on syömälakossa, niiden mustat aukot on umpeen tervattu, siis niille riittää pelkät apl oodit. Tai no jonkinlainen ryhtiliike saattaa niitä miellyttää. Tit for tat, se on vanhan ajan jumalien moraali. Lapl ace ei enää tarvinnut sitä hypoteesia.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 114: Today, many physicists believe that the holographic principl e (specifically the AdS/CFT duality) demonstrates that Hawking's conclusion was incorrect, and that information is in fact preserved. In 2004 Hawking himself conceded a bet he had made, agreeing that black hole evaporation does in fact preserve information.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 115: So it was A-OK that Steve never got the Nobel prize. He simpl y got it wrong. What an idiot.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 148: Ei perhana nyt loppuu tila, on uskaltauduttava avaruuteen. Etelänavasta etelään, nuori mies! On lähdettävä pilaamaan muita pl aneettoja.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 151: Hawking toivoo että apinaporukoiden eliitti selviää viime tingassa muulle pl aneetalle ja huiskuttaa raketin ikkunasta iloiset hyvästit löylyyn jääville muille eläville. Mä henk.koht. toivon ja uskon että nerokas lajimme häipyy huut helkkariin.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 157: Loput tästä transhumanismipl äjäyxestä on niin luotaantyöntävää etten tiedä hirviääkö edes lukea. Tää on ihan samaa paskaa kuin Hararin ja Pagen jutkuilla ja gatesziljonääreillä. Hirveätä hubrista. Ne konstruoivat izestään ja kaltaisistaan ponssareista jotain titaaneja.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 164: Siinä se olis lyhyt ja oikea vastaus, mutta vitun vamma jaxaa vekuttaa päinvastaisesta kuin ruuneperi. Onnex onnex se oli rullatuolissa. Muuten se varmaan heiluis jo tuolla lentoradalla Elon Muskin autolla. Tai no sehän olis sinänsä hyvä asia jos se olis häipynyt ulkoavaruuteen kuin Aniara, tai neuvostokoira Laika. Tässä se paljastaa oikean karvansa: se on just tollanen kaikki mulle heti nyt tyypin vitun konkistadori jonka ansiota on koko maailman tuho ja ylikansoitus. Ja size halus vielä mennä levittämään vammasta runkkuaan muille pl aneetoille. Hyi helvetti. Mix vitussa? "Ilmeinen vastaus on sixi että se on siellä." Just siitä syystä Mount Everestkin on nyt täynnä hampurilaispapereita, kiipeilijöiden raatoja ja muita roskia kun tollaset wannabe Hillaryt vaeltaa sinne jonossa. "Maapallolle jääminen olisi sama kuin että autiolle saarelle haaxirikkoutuneet eivät yrittäisi päästä pois." No helvetti ei tää saari ollut autio ennenkuin Tapsan laiset tuholaiset autioitti sen. "Meidän on tutkittava aurinkokuntaa saadaxemme selville missä ihminen voi elää." Ei mitään tarvetta, aurinkokunnan ainut siisti paikka on, tai siis oli, tää pl aneetta.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 168: 1969 "Buzz" Aldrin ja "Veny Käsivahva" Armstrong laskeutuivat kuuhun potkiskelemaan kuupölyä. Pieni askel miehelle, vielä pienempi mieslajille. JOS laskeutuivat, ehkä se oli pelkkää huijausta, Pirkko Zilles on siitä vakuuttunut. Holokaustifilmitkin oli lavastettuja. Tapsa missas ohjelman, koska oli Liverpoolissa kuuuntelemassa René Thomin katastrofiteorian luentoa. L I V, E R P, double-O L, Liverpool FC. Not the pl an! Noihin aikoihin ei ollut nettitelevisiota. Mä näin sen Münchenin juna-aseman telkkareista Kreetan-matkalla. Se muutti ihmislajin tulevaisuuden. Mitä vittua. Huonoon suuntaan se oli mennyt jo aikapäiviä. Kun kuulennot eivät jatkuneet, Tapsan tapaiset lupaavat nuoret brittitutkijat pettyivät ja alkoivat trainspotata sekä särkeä hylättyjä taloja Yorkshiren slummeissa. Falklandin sota vähän piristi, ja aavikkomyrsky, mutta nyt on taas pelkästään TYYYYLLLSÄÄÄÄ. Yxi poskilihas ei oikeen korvaa salikäyntejä. Brexit ei ehtinyt paljon haitata Tapsaa ennenkun se teki oman exitin. "Uusi miehitettyjen avaruuslentojen ohjelma palauttaisi suuren yleisön innostuxen avaruutta ja ylipäänsä tiedettä kohtaan." Onhan paljon hauskempaa kazella kuin jätkän käy, ja ihmetellä huuli pyöreenä kun irtopäät ja suolenpätkät lentelevät epäonnistuneessa lähtökiireessä. Astronautteja vois taas haastatella tai niiden surevia perheitä ja niistä tehdä purkkakuvia, niinkuin hienolla 60-luvulla. Voi helvetti.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 175: Tulee mieleen Douglas Adamsin hyvin sotaisa avaruusarmada, joka osoittautui hämmästyxexeen toisella pl aneetalla pelkäxi hyttysparvexi, jonka joku supersammakko tai lehmä nielaisi. Aku Ankassa oli samantapainen Carl Barxin sarjakuva kun oltiin pieniä. Valtamerilaivan kokoisia heinäsirkkoja. Se teki syvän vaikutuxen. Carl Barx hämmästyi kun suomalaiset palvoi sitä nerona.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 183: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 192: Olin Muskin kanssa Future of Life-instituutin hississä. Meillä oli ihanaa. Saavutimme painottomuuden tunteita. Mielestäni on tärkeää, että kaikki tietävät miten meillä oli ihanaa. Mielestäni on tärkeää, ettei historiaan enää kiinnitetä huomiota, vaan kazeet suunnataan tekoälykkäästi tulevaisuuteen. Ainoa asia minkä historiasta opimme on että emme opi siitä mitään. Mixi siis vaivautua. Uuden teknologian avulla voimme korjata vaurioita, joita edelliset teknologiat ovat tehneet luonnolle. Paizi että emme käytä sitä siihen, vaan entistä tehokkaampaan rikastumiseen luonnon kustannuxella. Mitäpä leobardi mahtaa täpl illeen.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 203: Hyvä esim: maapallo on käymässä meille liian pienexi, sanoo egoistis-narsistinen Tapani. Päinvastoin! Meistä on tullut maapallolle liian iso rasite. Sietää soveltaa E.Saarisen suhteellisuusteoriaa: ei suurenneta pesätonttia, vaan pienennetään termiittitiheyttä. Intel on tukenut minua 25 vuotta, siitä sille suuret kiitoxet Hi Google! Thanx Siri! Much obliged Segway --- AARGH! Mein Leben! Pääsin tähän saavutuxeen sisäisen paloni ansiosta. Käytän aivojeni käyttöliittymänä Facebookia. (Tästä mainoxesta oli sovittu Silverfishin kaa, se kuuluu meidän läpimurtotähdenlentodiiliin.) Sillä seuraajani pysyvät ajan tasalla uusimmista teorioistani. Käytän sitä vielä täältä pilvenlongalta, pl ease tune in! Internet yhdistää meidät kaikki kuten Matrix-leffassa, olemme neuroneja jättimäisissä sähköaivoissa. Ja kun älykkyysosamäärä on sen mukainen, mihin emme kykenisi? Voimmeko edes luoda niin isoa kiveä ettemme jaxa sitä nostaa? Kaikkien pitää palvoa tiedettä kuin jotain jumalaa. Hei Pekka, voitit vedon, Hawking silinteripäisine virkaveljineen on todellakin kotoisin mustasta aukosta!
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 205: Seisomme kaikilla tieteenaloilla merkittävien uusien kexintöjen kynnyxellä. Useitakin tärkeitä mahdollisuuxia! Ymmärrämme mistä reiästä elämä syntyi maapallolla ja mihinkä reikään se katosi. Saatamme jopa selvittää, onko munalla maailmankaikkeudessa mahixia! Viestimme älykkäiden maahanmuuttajien kaa! Emme voi enää kazoa izeämme silmiin yhä saastuneemmalla ja ylikansoitetulla pl aneetalla. Emme voi seisoa jalkaterät sisäänpäin. Olen optimisti jolla on uskoa vaikka siirtää pl aneettoja radaltaaN ja panna niiden sijaan tekokuita! Tarina ei pääty täh--- Täh? Kuka, minäkö? Hei tää hissi lähti nyt alaspäin! Kuka painoi väärää nappulaa? Mähän suuntasin kazeeni ylös tähtiin enkä alas jalkoihini! Anna anteexi eno että katosin, sanomatta sanaakaan. Otin viestejä vastaan kaukaa, vieraita pl aneetoilta. Nojoo. Hei Tapsa, vielä yxi asia, kuuntele nyt hyvin tarkasti: HAISTA KUULE PSSKA!
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 210: Although I did not know Prof. Hawking, I do have ALS, which puts me in a similar situation. He has to have someone to help him. As simpl e as that. Although they may use a Hoyer lift, and if he still values his privacy, he may also use a bidet rather than being wiped. This is a terribly debilitating illness, that presents new challenges at every turn.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 222: Being buried in Westminster Abbey is generally considered a very high honour. Not that you’re likely to care after you’ve died. Once you’re dead, it’s no longer about you. It’s about how peopl e remember you. More peopl e are likely to remember him buried in Westminster Abbey than in outer space, which appears sparsely populated at best.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 345: Tässä välissä sopii kaupata Pekka Reinikaisen kirjoja. Niitä kirjoittamassa on ollut joukko fixuja ihmisiä: insinöörejä, hammaslääkäreitä, pankinjohtajia, fysiikan tohtori, onpa jopa yxi biologi. Eläimet on kivoja, etenkin siilit. Kaikki eläimet tietävät, että jumala on ne tehnyt. Pekan kirjassa saarnaa 50 eläintä. A representative sampl e of the eight million, seven hundred thousand species! And one species to rule them all! Put that in your pipe and smoke Charles!
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 472: Pekka sanoo ettei Jeesus valinnut apostolixi kirjanoppineita. Paizi Paavalin, ton suuren juutalaisen konnamiehen, joka kyllä taisi ihan valita ize izensä. Se oli Pekankin ratkaisu, kun äänestäjät äänestivät jaloillaan. David Berlinski laski että matka virtahevosta behemotixi oli yhtä pitkä kuin kupl afolkkarista U-Bootixi. (VW valmisti sodan aikaan lentokonemoottoreita, muttei U-Booteja.) Mutta Berlinskin matematiikka oli lyhyempi vielä kuin Valtaojan, vajaan vuoden pituinen. Se suuttui varmaan biologeille kun ne heitti sen Columbiasta pihalle.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 478: After his PhD, Berlinski was a research assistant in the Department of Biology at Columbia University for less than one year. He has taught philosophy, mathematics and English at Stanford University, Rutgers, the City University of New York and the Université de Paris [citation needed]. He was a research fellow at the International Institute for Appl ied Systems Analysis (IIASA) in Austria and the Institut des Hautes Études Scientifiques (IHES) in France [citation needed. Maybe it is all a bunch of lies.]
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 484: An opponent of biological evolution, Berlinski is a senior fellow of the Discovery Institute's Center for Science and Culture, a Seattle-based think tank that is a hub of the pseudoscientific intelligent design movement. Berlinski shares the movement's rejection of the evidence for evolution, but does not openly avow intelligent design and describes his relationship with the idea as: "warm but distant. It's the same attitude that I displ ay in public toward my ex-wives." Berlinski is a critic of evolution, yet, "Unlike his colleagues at the Discovery Institute,...[he] refuses to theorize about the origin of life." Vitun jutku, ei niihin ole luottamista, jeesuxen murhaajiin.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 500: The above quote is a classic exampl e of evolution being a god-of-the-gaps expl anation. There is a total gap in what evolution can expl ain about the origin of life, and Dawkins invokes the god of evolution to fill in the gap and asserts that natural selection “must” have gotten started somehow. But natural selection by itself cannot create anything; it can only select from things already created.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 502: How dense can these creation types really be? Wanting very much for something to be true turns peopl e into imbeciles. The least one can say for Dawkins is that he knows what he doesn´t know. He his happy to just wait and see. One of my daughters challenged the teacher and said, “Miss, you keep saying ‘evolution did it,’ but you never actually expl ain how evolution did it.” The teacher had to confess that my daughter made a valid criticism, and the rest of class agreed. So what? How did god create the snake? Did he roll it like Gary Larson shows, or did he use some other method? Did he just make a hypnotic gesture? (Yes, see below.)
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 552: Asian selvittänyt expertti on dipl omi-insinööri, geologi ja pappi. Siinä on jo silinterihattuja. Sehän on kuin ize jehova, suunnittelee, toteuttaa, ja kertoo laajalle yleisölle töiden tarkoituxen. Rakennamme parasta mahdollista maailmaa. Pekka Reinikaiselle tulee autoliiton lehti. Se on selkeästi vanhan liiton miehiä.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 584: Overlapping genes on saanut Pekan kuumumaan. Se näyttää olevan enemmänkin poikkeus, lähinnä viiruxilla ja mitokondrioissa sitä saattaa esiintyä. ERITTÄIN kummaa sepustusta että geenimuutoxet on aina huononnuxia, ja että antibioottiresistentit bakteerit käyttää antibiootteja kainalosauvoina, ja ne kuolevat kun potilas ei saa antibiootteja. Tästä kai vois jätkän panna viralta, ellei se olisi jo virkaheitto lääkäri. Mut on vaan hieno homma jos uskovaista halvexitaan, se on pl ussaa ylhäällä. Pekan perimä on mainio, koska se on jo 2v vanhempi kuin raamatussa luvattiin. Ei kannattaisi enää kloonata, liian vähän telomeerejä. Kuka haluaisikaan. 1 Pekassa on 1 liikaa.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 27: Do vil inte ha pengar ? play:none">Vittuilua
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 36: Apinoita pl aneetalla on noin 7G. Erilaisia on mun arviolta enint. kymmeniä tai sata. Miten tämä on ymmärrettävä? Se on kombinatoriikkaa ja resoluutiota. Tietyllä rasterilla pienet erot häviävät merkityxettömixi. Se rasteri pohjautuu vuorostaan kourallisen dimensioita. Siitä tulee paljon jakolaskua joka logaritmisesti kesyttää tuon termiittien paljouden.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 65: Erilaisia tautiluokituksia kirjassa on on paljon. Mahtipontisuuden tautiin hurahtaneella on pakkomielle vauraudesta, vallasta ja kaikkivaltiudesta. Suuruusharhasta kärsivällä on virheellinen käsitys omasta merkityksestään. Jumaluuskompl eksia poteva kokee olevansa yhteiskunnan sääntöjen yläpuolella ja ansaitsevansa erilaisia huomionosoituksia.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 80: Yksi jumaluuskompl eksin riivaama artisti on Kanye West. Vuonna 2008 räppäri ilmoitti haastattelussa olevansa kuin astia, jonka Jumala on valinnut äänekseen ja viestiensä välittäjäksi. Seuraavana vuonna hän sanoi: ”Jumala valitsi minut. Hän teki minulle polun. Suurin tuskani elämässäni on, että en voi koskaan nähdä itseäni esiintymässä livenä. Olen Warhol. Olen numero yksi, kaikkein vaikuttavin meidän sukupolvemme taiteilija. Olen lihaxikkaaxi tullut Shakespeare, Walt Disney. Nike. Google.”
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 115: Sarah (Sally) Hemings (c. 1773 – 1835) was an enslaved woman of mixed race owned by President Thomas Jefferson. Multipl e lines of evidence indicate that Jefferson had a long-term sexual relationship with Hemings, and historians now broadly agree that he was the father of her six children. Hemings was a half-sister of Jefferson's wife, Martha Jefferson (née Wayles). Four of Hemings' children survived into adulthood. Hemings died in Charlottesville, Virginia, in 1835.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 117: The historical question of whether Jefferson was the father of Hemings' children is the subject of the Jefferson–Hemings controversy. Following renewed historical analysis in the late 20th century, and a 1998 DNA study (compl eted in 1999 and published as a report in 2000) that found a match between the Jefferson male line and a descendant of Hemings' youngest son, Eston Hemings, the Monticello Foundation asserted that Jefferson fathered Eston and likely her other five children as well. However, there are some who disagree. In 2018, the Thomas Jefferson Foundation of Monticello announced its pl ans to have an exhibit titled Life of Sally Hemings, and affirmed that it was treating as a settled issue that Jefferson was the father of her known children. The exhibit opened in June 2018.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 122: What more than anything is missing in recent films, and shines spl endidly in Maxwell’s films, is the sense of glory, the feeling that some have lived on an elevated pl ane according to the dictates of the highest sense of duty and honor. It’s an unfashionable feeling today, and mocked by those who conspicuously lack it, who love weakly, who think solely in quotidian, political terms. It cannot be understood by those without religious faith, for Heaven is a City of Glory and glory is the special attribute of a God who, if hidden, nevertheless offers us a glimpse of the special virtue of his glory in the lives of those who in moments of danger are willing to sacrifice themselves for a cause they think greater than themselves; and that, above the messiness of political squabbles, is the message behind Maxwell’s films. (The American Spectator 2015)
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 124: Ron Maxwell is (or was) an ardent Trump supporter. He fears some truly inspired Shakespeare director is sure to portray Duncan as Trump, so that Macbeth can spend a full five minutes frenetically stabbing him in his sleep, which should provide ampl e time for the Trump hating zealots to achieve their ultimate catharsis. But this does not make Trump a villain. As with all of Shakespeares characters, Trump is entirely human in his compl exity and contradiction. Shakespeare for dummies indeed.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 132: Buried penis (also known as hidden penis or retractile penis) is a congenital or acquired condition, in which the penis is partially or compl etely hidden below the surface of the skin. It was first described by Edward Lawrence Keyes in 1919 as the apparent absence of the penis and as being buried beneath the skin of the abdomen, thigh, or scrotum. Further research was done by Maurice Campbell in 1951 when he reported on the penis being buried beneath subcutaneous fat of the scrotum, perineum, hypogastrium, and thigh. A buried penis can lead to obstruction of urinary stream, poor hygiene, soft tissue infection, phimosis, and inhibition of normal sexual function.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 143: Kotihoito ei kuitenkaan välttämättä tehoa. Leikkausmenetelmiä ahtauden korjaamiseksi on muutamia, kuten preputiopl astia, joka paranee nopeasti eikä merkittävästi vaikuta peniksen ulkonäköön. Radikaalimpana vaihtoehtona on myös kirurginen menetelmä, ympärileikkaus.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 183: Kiintymysvanhempien kiintymyslapsista tulee hautovassa kupl assa sietämättömiä narsisteja. Omena ei kauas putoa. Vahva tunneside hoivanantajiin muodostaa pohjan aikuisiän läheisille ihmissuhteille. Kaikki mulle heti nyt, olkaa mulle äiskiä ja iskiä, antakaa ja auttakaa. Hyvä esimerkki oli David Foster Wallace.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 270: Shem, a son of Noah, was the father of all the Semetic peopl e (primarily Jews and Arabs). Elam was Shem’s oldest son (Genesis 10:22). He was born after the flood and was the patriarch of the Elamites. His descendants settled in the valley between the north eastern shore of the Persian Gulf and the Zagros Mountains, where some believe Noah’s ark might have come to rest.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 271: (Genesis 11:2) says that after the flood the new population of Earth spread out from the east. They found a pl ain in Shinar and settled there. This pl ain is where the Tirgis and Euphrates Rivers flow parallel to each other toward the Persian Gulf. It became known as Mesopotamia which means “between the rivers.” The Zagros mountains are due east of Mesopotamia whereas the mountains of Ararat, traditional location of the Ark, are several hundred miles to the north.)
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 275: Daniel 8:2 identifies Susa as being in the province of Elam, indicating it was already a part of the Persian Empire at the time. From this brief history it appears that all but the last verse of Jeremiah’s prophecy was fulfilled in the Assyrian and Persian conquests. By the way, Daniel was buried in Susa and his tomb has been preserved to this day because he has always been highly revered among the Persian peopl e.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 277: WHO ARE THESE PEOPLE? A case can be made for the view that “Persian” and “Elamite” are not two names for the same peopl e but that having conquered Elam, Persia became the successor to Elam, whose original inhabitants, as Jeremiah’s prophecy indicates, have been scattered to the four winds and absent from the pages of history for over 2,500 years. Evidence of the difference in origin between the Elamites and the Persians came from the mouth of none other than Persian King Darius the Great who said, “I am Darius, the great king, the king of kings, the king of many countries and many peopl e, the king of this expansive land, the son of Wishtaspa of Achaemenid, Persian, the son of a Persian, ‘Aryan’, from the Aryan race” (From Darius the Great’s Inscription in Naqshe-e-Rostam).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 278: Some scholars say Iran means “land of the Aryans” and claim that the Iranians are not descendants of Shem, as the Elamites were, but more likely came from Japeth, whose descendants are mostly Caucasians. This supports the view that Elam and Persia are not different names for the same peopl e. Also, the native languages of the two groups were different.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 279: This may expl ain why Ezekiel, who wrote from Babylon at the same time Jeremiah was writing from Jerusalem, identified one of the major participants in the Battle of Ezekiel 38 as being Persia, and not Elam. God might have informed him, as He did Jeremiah, that the Elamites would be conquered and scattered to the four winds by their Persian neighbors.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 280: It could also help us understand why the Arabs of the Middle East today are so opposed to the Iranians gaining any kind of political or military advantage over them. Even though they share varieties of the same religion (Islam), the Persians are not Arabs. As an exampl e, if you follow our “Prophecy in the Headlines” feature, you’ve probably read about Saudi Arabian officials announcing that because of the US pursuit of a more cooperative relationship with Iran, the Saudi kingdom will henceforth be limiting its interaction with the US and going its own way where Middle Eastern affairs are concerned.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 283: For an instant, I thought I had offended him. Then, as if he was correcting a child, He said, “Persians are not Arabs. We’re Caucasians.”) But there’s one verse that prevents us from proclaiming Jeremiah’s prophecy to be compl etely fulfilled in history. Jeremiah 49:39 says, “Yet I will restore the fortunes of Elam in days to come, declares the Lord.”
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 285: WHAT HAPPENED TO ELAM? There’s no record of a re-emergence of the Elamites since the Persian conquest 2500 years ago. Some say Jeremiah 49:39 is currently being fulfilled through the Iranians. They say this partly because Iran’s primary nuclear facilities are in the area once called Elam. Its recently compl eted nuclear reactor in Bushehr lies on the eastern shore of the Persian Gulf in the heart of ancient Elam. If that’s the case then God’s restoration of Elam’s fortunes is both brief and haphazard, its stated purpose is opposed to God’s pl an for Israel, and it is doomed to end in even more destruction.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 287: Currently, the most popular view is that the compl ete fulfillment of Jeremiah’s prophecy is for our time and will take pl ace shortly through Iran’s defeat in the Battle of Ezekiel 38. But if that’s true, then the Iranian peopl e will have to be scattered among all the nations following their defeat and then somehow regain God’s favor during Daniel’s 70th Week in order for the last verse to be fulfilled. There’s simpl y no good reason to believe this will happen. After one brief reference in Ezekiel 38:5, the future of Persia is never mentioned in the Bible again.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 288: I think it’s reasonable to expect prophecies that have only been partially fulfilled in history to have their ultimate fulfilment in our future. The idea that a partial historical fulfilment points to a compl ete future fulfilment is a well established principl e in the Bible. Two exampl es we’ve reviewed recently are Isaiah 17 and Psalm 83. The literal and compl ete fulfilment of these prophecies has not happened yet.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 291: There are other cases of nations being as totally erased from history and then suddenly reappearing. Israel and Babylon are two obvious exampl es. But with both of them there are multipl e chapters with detailed descriptions of their re-emergence and subsequent destiny. With Elam we get one non-definitive verse.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 293: LET’S TRY TO BE MORE CAREFUL. I think there are a number of peopl e today who are guilty of interpreting Bible prophecy in light of current events when the reverse is supposed to happen. We are supposed to interpret current events in light of Bible prophecy. These peopl e read the world news and then scour the Bible for prophetic verses that seem to fit without fully researching their history to see to what extent they’ve already been fulfilled. Many of them are novices where Bible prophecy is concerned, but some should know better.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 295: We also need to remember that Bible prophecy only illuminates world history where Israel is concerned. Great Empires have come and gone during Israel’s absence without so much as a hint of their existence in the Bible. Even the United States, by any measure the most successful of them all, is missing from the prophetic record. You can’t tell me God didn’t know these empires were coming, so their absence has to mean that He sees them as irrelevant to Israel’s destiny. Don’t get me wrong, He has used them all to advance His pl an for His peopl e, and they were all blessed through their time of participation. But He didn’t find any of them worthy of mention because He didn’t actually need any of them to fulfil His pl an.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 299: I make known the end from the beginning, from ancient times what is still to come. I say, My purpose will stand, and I will do all that I pl ease (Isaiah 46:10).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 303: The Biblical peopl e called by the names above once occupied the territory we know today as Jordan, the nation due east of Israel. Not many peopl e realize that Edom, Moab, and Ammon were given their homelands by God himself (Deut. 2:5, 9, 19) just like Israel was. And just like Israel was told to clear the land west of the Jordan River of the peopl e who lived there at the time, Edom, Moab, and Ammon were told to perform the same service for God on the Eastern side (Deut. 2:10-12, 20-22).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 305: One of the peopl e groups they "eliminated" was the Rephaites (Rephaim), an ancient group of loosely related tribes of giants who are often thought to be descendants of the Nephilim, mentioned in Genesis 6. In fact, when the 12 Israelite spies first went into the promised land they reported seeing Nephilim there (Numbers 13:33). The Rephaites were a mysterious peopl e about whom the Bible says very little, except that Israel, Edom, Moab, and Ammon were all given the task of destroying them and taking their land.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 333: Edom was the name given to the descendants of Jacob’s twin brother Esau. Having patched things up after their spl it over the way Jacob had tricked Isaac into giving him Esau’s blessing (Genesis 27), they returned to the area near Kiriath Arba (Hebron) where Isaac and Rebekah lived. Upon Isaac’s death the two brothers buried him and divided up their inheritance.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 336: The relationship between Israel and its three neighbors to the East was never good, and they fought with each other frequently. Sometimes God used Israel to discipl ine them and at other times He used them to discipl ine Israel. Under King David, Israel conquered and subjugated all of them for a time (2 Samuel 8:1-14).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 338: 400 years later, the Babylonians came as the Lord’s instrument of judgment against Israel. Edom, Moab, and Ammon all cheered for Babylon and made pl ans to carve up the Promised Land for themselves after the Babylonians carried Israel into captivity. This displ eased the Lord and He had the Babylonians destroy them as well. Moab and Ammon ceased to exist as nations at that time (Ezekiel 25:10).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 343: EDOM, MOAB, AND AMMON IN THE END TIMES. Edom, Moab, and Ammon are listed in Psalm 83:6-7 among the participants in a scheme to destroy Israel and erase it’s name from peopl e’s memories. By most accounts this battle has never taken pl ace and will most likely be one of the next events on the prophetic horizon. The psalmist’s prayer is that the Lord will cause them to perish in disgrace.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 350: Rev. 12:13-17 tells us that after Satan is confined to Earth he will go after “the woman”, symbolic of Israel. But the woman will be given the wings of a great eagle, enabling her to flee into the desert to a pl ace prepared for her, where she will be taken care of for a time, times and half a time, which is 3 ½ years, the duration of the Great Tribulation. This agrees with Matt. 24:15-21 where the Lord warned the believing remnant of Israel to flee to the mountains to escape the Great Tribulation. The closest mountains to Jerusalem are in Moab and Edom.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 352: And concerning the time of the 2nd coming, Isaiah wrote: Who is this coming from Edom, from Bozrah, with his garments stained crimson? Who is this, robed in spl endor, striding forward in the greatness of his strength? “It is I, proclaiming victory, mighty to save.” Why are your garments red, like those of one treading the winepress? “I have trodden the winepress alone; from the nations no one was with me. I trampl ed them in my anger and trod them down in my wrath; their blood spattered my garments, and I stained all my clothing. It was for me the day of vengeance; the year for me to redeem had come. I looked, but there was no one to help, I was appalled that no one gave support; so my own arm achieved salvation for me, and my own wrath sustained me. I trampl ed the nations in my anger; in my wrath I made them drunk and poured their blood on the ground”
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 357: Combining these prophecies we have the anti-Christ, now indwelt by Satan, determined to rid the world of God’s peopl e once and for all. Heeding the Lord’s 2,000 year old warning, the believing remnant will flee to the mountains of Edom where the city of Petra has been standing empty for centuries, as if in preparation. The phrase “wings of a great eagle” in Rev. 12:14 is reminiscent of Exodus 19:4 where the Lord used the same phrase to describe the way he delivered Israel from the Egyptians. This impl ies the same kind of supernatural assistance, such as when Satan spews out a river of water to sweep the woman away. But the Lord will open the earth to swallow the river and save the woman. This will enrage Satan, but he will leave the woman and go after other followers of Jesus (Rev. 12:15-17).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 359: These prophecies help us understand how Edom, Moab, and Ammon could escape the clutches of the anti-Christ. The Lord has chosen Petra as the city of refuge where He will protect His peopl e throughout the Great Tribulation. In doing so, He will make sure the whole area stays out of the hands of His enemy. It also expl ains why, when He returns, He will first go to Edom to clear the way for His peopl e to return to Jerusalem (Isaiah 63:1-6).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 363: Our various destinations always included the ruins of Jerash (Gerasa). It was a prominent city of the Decapolis in the Lord’s time (Matt. 4:25), and is located about 30 miles north of Amman. Traveling through the ancient land of the Ammonites, we found it to be quite beautiful in pl aces, with green valleys and numerous villages.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 365: We always spent a day in Petra, as well. We traveled south from Amman down the eastern side of the Dead Sea, through ancient Moab and into Edom. As we journeyed south we soon found ourselves in desert country, but it’s still far from being a wasteland. The highway was wide and well maintained, with light to moderate traffic in both directions, and we passed through several villages with pl easant rest stops before reaching Petra.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 368: “I have heard the insults of Moab and the taunts of the Ammonites, who insulted my peopl e and made threats against their land. Therefore, as surely as I live,” declares the Lord Almighty, the God of Israel, “surely Moab will become like Sodom, the Ammonites like Gomorrah—a pl ace of weeds and salt pits, a wasteland forever. The remnant of my peopl e will pl under them; the survivors of my nation will inherit their land” (Zeph. 2:8-9).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 371: My sword has drunk its fill in the heavens; see, it descends in judgment on Edom, the peopl e I have totally destroyed. The sword of the Lord is bathed in blood, it is covered with fat—the blood of lambs and goats, fat from the kidneys of rams. For the Lord has a sacrifice in Bozrah and a great slaughter in the land of Edom. And the wild oxen will fall with them, the bull calves and the great bulls. Their land will be drenched with blood, and the dust will be soaked with fat.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 373: For the Lord has a day of vengeance, a year of retribution, to uphold Zion’s cause. Edom’s streams will be turned into pitch, her dust into burning sulfur; her land will become blazing pitch! It will not be quenched night or day; its smoke will rise forever. From generation to generation it will lie desolate; no one will ever pass through it again. The desert owl and screech owl will possess it; the great owl and the raven will nest there. God will stretch out over Edom the measuring line of chaos and the pl umb line of desolation (Isaiah 34:5-11).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 379: Edom, Moab, and Ammon stand as witnesses to the terrible end that comes to countries who take their stand against God and His peopl e. It truly is a fearful thing to fall into the hands of the Living God (Hebrews 10:31). 01-24-15. God save us from such a fate!
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 384: A: The Iranians are the modern day Persians who originated in Elam, not Edom. Edom was the birthpl ace of the Ammonites and the Moabites and was later inhabited by the family of Esau, Jacob’s brother. Edom got its name from Esau, and is called Jordan today. Elam was located further east on the other side of Iraq, where Iran is today. Obadiah prophesied against the Edomites who were driven out of their capital (Petra) by the Nabateans, a Bedouin peopl e descended from Ishmael, in fulfillment of Obadiah’s prophecy. Many believe that during the Great Tribulation, the Jordanians will hide believing Jews in Petra where God will protect them against the anti-Christ. The area is called Bosrah in Isaiah 63.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 444: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 576: Minä olen vain samallum, pikkukauppias ja kanankakankantaja, mutta niinkuin huomaatte, voin saada paljon aikaan tiedoillani, voin aiheuttaa jopa kokonaisten kaupunkien luovaa tuhoa. Mitäh, huomautti joku paimenista loukkaantuneena. Eikö paimenen virka ole kaikkein vanhin, ja eikö paimenia kunnioiteta kaikkialla? Paimen ja maanviljelijä ovat vanhimmat. Niin ja se maailman vanhin ammatti. - Läppä läppä, oikaisi tietojenkauppias (nimeltänsä Google) havaittuaan paimenten ilmeet karsaixi. (Mutta kauppa se on joka kannattaa, ja henkilöllisyyxien kauppa kumminkin, se ajatteli näin, izexensä nimittäin.) Hawkingia kiellettiin kertomasta lopun aikojen big crashista, se voisi aiheuttaa paniikkia pörssissä. Same difference, pl us ca change, pl us c'est la meme chose.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 585: Already in the early Bronze Age, Aleppo (Halpa) was a major city of the weather god. With the conquest of Syria by Suppiluliuma I (1355-1325 BC), this city was incorporated into the Hittite realm and Suppiluliuma installed his son Telipinu as priest-king of Aleppo. The templ e of the weather god of Aleppo was adjusted to conform to Hittite cult. During the Iron Age, a new templ e was dedicated to Tarhunz of Halpa.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 587: Tarḫunz (stem: Tarḫunt-) was the weather god and chief god of the Luwians, a peopl e of Bronze Age and early Iron Age Anatolia. He is closely associated with the Hittite god Tarḫunna and the Hurrian god Teshub.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 589: The Luwians /ˈluːwiənz/ were a group of Anatolian peopl es who lived in central, western, and southern Anatolia, in present-day Turkey, in the Bronze Age and the Iron Age. They spoke the Luwian language, an Indo-European language of the Anatolian sub-family, which was written in cuneiform imported from Mesopotamia, and a unique native hieroglyphic script, which was sometimes used by the linguistically related Hittites also.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 602: Kuolleen meren kääröissä oli texti 1. tai 2. vs. ennen Krisua, jossa Melkisedek on jumala ja siitä käytetään nimityxiä "El" ja "Elohim", joita normixesti käytetään jumalasta. Amoriinien jumalat eli elohiim (pl .) fuusioitiin sittemmin tuulenpyörteeseen ja saatiin 1 jumala eli jehova. Textin mukaan Melkisedek julistaa sovituxen päivän ja sovittaa silloin ihmiset jotka on sille esivalittu. Se tuomizee myös kansoja. Mumslimit tuntee sen peitenimellä Kidr. Here's looking at you Kidr.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 607: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f9/Brooklyn_Museum_-_What_Our_Lord_Saw_from_the_Cross_%28Ce_que_voyait_Notre-Seigneur_sur_la_Croix%29_-_James_Tissot.jpg/800px-Brooklyn_Museum_-_What_Our_Lord_Saw_from_the_Cross_%28Ce_que_voyait_Notre-Seigneur_sur_la_Croix%29_-_James_Tissot.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 623: "Eloi, Eloi, Lama Sabachthani", or "The Baumoff Expl osive", a short story by William Hope Hodgson
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 644: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/15/Middle_East_Shem-Ham.jpg/200px-Middle_East_Shem-Ham.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 667: Right and left pl ay an important role in Jacob's final blessing to his grandsons, Ephraim and Manasseh (Gen. 48: 12–20), whom Joseph pl aces at the left and right sides of Jacob, respectively (verse 13), expecting his father to pl ace his right hand on Manasseh (the firstborn) and his left on Ephraim, and then bless them. But Jacob crosses his hands, pl acing his right hand on Ephraim (verse 14) and his left on Manasseh, despite Joseph's objections (verse 18). Jacob expl ains his actions by stating that Ephraim will be greater than Manasseh (verse 19).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 674: The term shibboleth originates from the Hebrew word shibbólet (שִׁבֹּלֶת), which means the part of a pl ant containing grain, such as the head of a stalk of wheat or rye; or less commonly but arguably more appositely (selvennä!) "flood, torrent".
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 686: Considered less pl ausible by academic and Jewish authorities are the claims of several western Christian and related groups, in particular those of the Church of God in Christ. It claims that the whole UK is the direct descendant of Ephraim, and that the whole United States is the direct descendant of Manasseh, based on the interpretation that Jacob had said these two tribes would become the most supreme nations in the world. Some adherents of Messianic Judaism also identify as part of Joseph on the basis that, regardless of any genetic connection which may or may not exist, they observe the Torah and interpret parts of the Tanakh in certain ways.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 688: he Church of Jesus Christ of Latter-day Saints teaches that a significant portion of its members are descended from or adopted into the tribe of Ephraim, believing that they are charged with restoring the lost tribes in the latter days, as prophesied by Isaiah. Along with members of the tribe of Judah, members of the tribe of Ephraim are believed to be pl aying an important leadership roles for covenant Israel in the last days. Members' lineage is declared through patriarchal blessings.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 718: The descendants of Lud are usually, following Josephus, connected with various Anatolian peopl es, particularly Lydia (Assyrian Luddu) and their predecessors, the Luwians; cf. Herodotus' assertion (Histories i. 7) that the Lydians were first so named after their king, Lydus (Λυδός). However, the chronicle of Hippolytus of Rome (c. 234 AD) ... [aivan päin vittua, sori vaan Hippolytus].
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 722: Aram oli myös suomalaisten rakastama Aram Hatshipompponen. Khachaturian always remained enthusiastic about communism, and was an atheist. When asked about his visit to the Vatican, Khachaturian responded: "I'm an atheist, but I'm a son of the [Armenian] peopl e who were the first to officially adopt Christianity and thus visiting the Vatican was my duty."
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 730: One expl anation is that it has an original meaning of "lowlands", from a Semitic root knʿ "to be low, humble, depressed", in contrast with Aram, "highlands". An alternative suggestion derives the term from Hurrian Kinahhu, purportedly referring to the colour purpl e, so that Canaan and Phoenicia would be synonyms ("Land of Purpl e"), but it is just as common to assume that Kinahhu was simpl y the Hurrian rendition of the Semitic knʿn.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 757: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5d/Ksenophontov_noah.jpg/800px-Ksenophontov_noah.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 766: The curse of Ham (actually pl aced upon Ham's son Canaan) occurs in the Book of Genesis, imposed by the patriarch Noah. It occurs in the context of Noah's drunkenness and is provoked by a shameful act perpetrated by Noah's son Ham, who "saw the nakedness of his father". The exact nature of Ham's transgression and the reason Noah cursed Canaan when Ham had sinned have been debated for over 2,000 years.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 768: The story's original purpose may have been to justify the subjection of the Canaanite peopl e to the Israelites, but in later centuries, the narrative was interpreted by some Christians, Muslims and Jews as an expl anation for black skin, as well as a justification for slavery. Similarly, the Latter Day Saint movement used the curse of Ham to prevent the ordination of black men to its priesthood.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 774: In the subsequent passage, "of Shem... may Canaan be his servant,"[9:26] the narrator is foreshadowing Israel's conquest of the promised land. Biblical scholar Philip R. Davies expl ains that the author of this narrative used Noah to curse Canaan, in order to provide justification for the later Israelites driving out and enslaving the Canaanites.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 28: Moskaportaali play:none">Moskaa
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 171: Mosg-Portal | ar | bg | da | el | es | et | fr | hi | hr | hu | id | it | iw | ja | ko | ms | nl | no | pl | pt | ro | ru | sk | sl | sr | sv | th | tr | uk | vi
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 204: Ja kaikkein eniten läppä on, että koko tätä juttua promosi lähinnä miehet: poliisit, hyväntekijät, filosofit, poliitikot. Joo miehet spl ainaa kaiken kuoliaaxi. Naiset, lapset ei niitä kiinnosta. Ne haluu vaan puhuu ja keskustella, kuunnella omaa ääntänsä, max toistensa ääniä. No siltä se vähän näyttää kun kazoo about mitä vaan. Jep siis ihan. Mitä. Vaan.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 259: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bf/Mario_Vargas_Llosa_%28crop_2%29.jpg/330px-Mario_Vargas_Llosa_%28crop_2%29.jpg" width="20%" />
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 261: Tää kaikki aktivoitui kun löysin jostain vaihtohyllystä Marion Santo Domingo-pl äjäyxen nimeltä Vuohen juhla, el fiesta del chivo. Tän San Domingon diktaattorilla Trujillolla mässyttelevän bühleinin huippukohta on seuraava Lösähdyxen märkä uni. Trujillo is tormented by both his incontinence and impotence. Trujillo sexually assaulted Urania. Mix just Urania? Veikkaan et tää on viittaus Löysän homofiliaan. He is unable to achieve an erection with Urania and, in frustration, rapes her with his bare hands. This event is the core of Urania's shame and hatred towards her own father. In addition, it's the cause of Trujillo's repeated anger over the "anemic little bitch" who witnessed his impotence and emotion, as well as the reason he's en route to "sleep" with another girl on the night of his assassination.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 268: The four characters of the novel are sketchily described, and their present circumstances are limited to the details that permit the development of the action of the novel. Since the story takes pl ace in a few day's time, the characters remain largely devoid of a past.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 270: Don Rigoberto is, by far, the novel's most interesting character, not because he is especially compl ex but because Vargas Llosa relishes in his quirks and describes them in titillating detail, creating what Anthony Burgess calls "the pornography of hygiene."
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 274: While the novel takes pl ace exclusively within the confines of the family home in Lima, it is clear that they enjoy a seemingly normal relationship with the outside world: business associates, friends, and school. Don Rigoberto, the head of the household, is the manager of an insurance company. A widower, he marries Lucrecia, a forty-year-old divorcee. Dona Lucrecia enjoys the fruits of her privileged lifestyle; during the day she directs the household staff, goes shopping, pl ays bridge, and attends to the care of Don Rigoberto's son, the angelic looking Alfonso, a prepubescent boy of indeterminate age.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 281: Joo olen muistavinani että tää snobistinen pornotaidepornokyhhäys oli joxeenkin haukotuttava. Kansikuvastakin mulla oli joku huomautus. Toi hanhennäköinen naishenkilö oli joteskin pedofiilinen. Liittyikö tää huomio jotenkin Ball-sackin huumoripl äjäyxeen "Leikillisiä tarinoita", joka on salaperäisesti hukkunut? No mun muisti on jo samanlainen kuin Seijan, se kexii ize juttuja.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 293: As a child, Vargas Llosa was led to believe that his father had died—his mother and her family did not want to expl ain that his parents had separated. During the government of Peruvian President José Bustamante y Rivero, Vargas Llosa's maternal grandfather obtained a dipl omatic post in the northern Peruvian coastal city of Piura and the entire family returned to Peru.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 303: Vargas Llosa began his literary career in earnest in 1957 with the publication of his first short stories, "The Leaders" ("Los jefes") and "The Grandfather" ("El abuelo"), while working for two Peruvian newspapers. Upon his graduation from the National University of San Marcos in 1958, he received a scholarship to study at the Compl utense University of Madrid in Spain. In 1960, after his scholarship in Madrid had expired, Vargas Llosa moved to France under the impression that he would receive a scholarship to study there; however, upon arriving in Paris, he learned that his scholarship request was denied. Despite Mario and Julia's unexpected financial status, the coupl e decided to remain in Paris where he began to write prolifically. Their marriage lasted only a few more years, ending in divorce in 1964. A year later, Vargas Llosa married his first cousin, Patricia Llosa, with whom he had three children: Álvaro (born 1966), a writer and editor; Gonzalo (born 1967), an international civil servant; and Fata Morgana (born 1974), a pornographer.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 305: Vargas Llosa väitteli vuonna 1971 tohtoriksi Gabriel García Márquezin tuotannosta Madridin Compl utensen yliopistossa. Hän toimi kirjailijoiden sananvapautta puolustavan kansainvälisen Pen-klubin puheenjohtajana 1976–1979.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 341: Berättad i den första personen av en av dess huvudpersoner, en 1: a års student i San Miguel de Piura-skolan, är det ett studentuppror mot direktörens beslut att inte sätta ordning på slutproven. Det handlar också om huvudpersonens rivalitet med Lu, en partner som har avsatt honom i ledarskapet för bandet "Los Coyotes". Båda pojkarna tvingas glömma sina meningsskiljaktigheter för att möta den gemensamma fienden, personifierad i skolans chef. Marschen uppl öses inför vägran att fortsätta den från grundskole- och gymnasieeleverna, rädda för repressalier från skolmyndigheterna.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 347: Jälkimmäisestä luin että sen sankari kärsi jonkun onnettomuuden poikasena joki teki siitä erilaisen kuin muut. Siihen sattui. Arvasin heti että siltä lähti pippeli ja/tai munat. Ja niinhän tietysti. Näitäkin liikenee maailmankirjallisuudessa, no vaikka tää, pl us Erneston Kake, Henry James ja eräs pohjoismaisen kirjallisuuspalkinnon ehdokas.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 373: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c1/Simone_de_Beauvoir2.png/330px-Simone_de_Beauvoir2.png" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 385: Simone de Beauvoir, who Sartre pl ayfully referred to as “The Beaver,” never published a piece of writing without her partner’s input until after his death. Likewise, he referred to her as a “filter” for his books, and some scholars have even made the case that she wrote some of them for him.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 389: Take, for exampl e, 16-year-old Bianca Bienenfeld, a student of de Beauvoir’s who was 14 years her junior. Soon after the two women began their affair, de Beauvoir introduced her lover to Sartre. He promptly made it his mission to seduce Bienenfeld. After a romantic entanglement between the three of them, de Beauvoir told Sartre to end it, which he abruptly did in a letter.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 391: Bienenfeld, who was Jewish, later narrowly escaped the Nazi occupation of France. Neither de Beauvoir nor Sartre tried to find her. When she read “Letters to Sartre” and saw the flippant tone the pair took toward her, she said, “Their perversity was carefully concealed beneath Sartre’s meek and mild exterior and the Beaver’s serious and austere appearance. In fact, they were acting out a commonpl ace version of ‘Liaisons Dangereuses’”.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 393: Mikäs se nyt oli? Ainiin se 1700-luvun romaani, mulla taitaa olla se, vaikken ole lukenut. A French epistolary novel by Pierre Choderlos de Laclos, first published in four volumes by Durand Neveu from March 23, 1782. It is the story of the Marquise de Merteuil and the Vicomte de Valmont, two narcissistic rivals (and ex-lovers) who use seduction as a weapon to socially control and expl oit others, all the while enjoying their cruel games and boasting about their talent for manipulation. It has been seen as depicting the corruption and depravity of the French nobility shortly before the French Revolution, and thereby attacking the Ancien Régime. The book has also been described as merely a story about two amoral peopl e.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 395: Bienenfeld may be an extreme exampl e, but she’s not atypical. Sartre tended to treat younger romantic prospects (all of whom were female) more as conquests than partners, spending months or years persuading them to get into bed with him and then bouncing off to regale “the Beaver” with details.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 397: In her same-gender partnerships, de Beauvoir tended to be expl oitative. There was the painful entanglement with Bienenfeld described earlier, for exampl e, and an affair with Natalie Sorokine, a 17-year-old student, which cost de Beauvoir her teaching license.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 432: Eemelii! huutaa isä ja lukizee Eemelin taas snickeboaan. Eemelin isä olisi ollut parempi asiantuntija lastenkasvatuxessa kuin JJ Rousseau, tuo ex-isäpappa joka kirjoitti kokonaisen kirjan asiasta josta sillä ei ollut ensikäden tietoa. Sen äiti kuoli lapsivuoteeseen, sen henkipatto isä jätti sen heitteille "kiltin pastorin" ja tupl alangon vaivoixi, se joutui puuman kynsiin 15-vuotiaana ja teki 5 lasta laundromaatille jotka se kaikki jätti kirkon portaille. Voltaire teki JJ:n Eemeli-kirjasta karkeahkoa pilaa. Mutta kerta Shirley Hubara mainizee sen lähteenä, pitää siihenkin näemmä tutstua lähemmin.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 434: Ce recueil de réflexions et d’observations, sans ordre et presque sans suite, fut commencé pour compl aire à une bonne mère qui sait penser. Je n’avais d’abord projeté qu’un mémoire de quelques pages; mon sujet m’entraînant malgré moi, ce mémoire devint insensiblement une espèce d’ouvrage trop gros, sans doute, pour ce qu’il contient, mais trop petit pour la matière qu’il traite. J’ai balancé longtemps à le publier; et souvent il m’a fait sentir, en y travaillant, qu’il ne suffit pas d’avoir écrit quelques brochures pour savoir composer un livre. Après de vains efforts pour mieux faire, je crois devoir le donner tel qu’il est, jugeant qu’il importe de tourner l’attention publique de ce côté-là; et que, quand mes idées seraient mauvaises, si j’en fais naître de bonnes à d’autres, je n’aurai pastout à fait perdu mon temps. Un homme qui, de sa retraite, jette ses feuilles dans le public, sans prôneurs, sans parti qui les défende, sans savoir même ce qu’on en pense ou ce qu’on en dit, ne doit pas craindre que, s’il se trompe, on admette ses erreurs sans examen.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 28: It was a dark and stormy night. play:none">Lyttäystä
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 35: Novelist Bulwer-Lytton was a friend and contemporary of Charles Dickens and was one of the pioneers of the historical novel, exempl ified by his most popular work, The Last Days of Pompeii. He is best remembered today for the opening line to the novel Paul Clifford, which begins "It was a dark and stormy night..." and is considered by some to be the worst opening sentence in the English language. However, Bulwer-Lytton is also responsible for well-known sayings such as "The penis mightier than the sword" from his pl ay Richelieu. Despite being a very popular author with 19th-century readers, few peopl e today are even aware of his prodigious body of literature spanning many genres. In the 21st century he is known best as the namesake for the Bulwer-Lytton Fiction Contest (BLFC), sponsored annually by the English Department at San Jose State University, which challenges entrants "to compose the opening sentence to the worst of all possible novels", and the township of Lytton, or Camchin until the British nosey parkers came, saw and beat the copper-colored nlaka'pamuxes. Now their village got burned to ashes thanx to the industrial revolution.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 40: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/ce/Lytton%3B_Canada%27s_Hot_Spot.jpg/1280px-Lytton%3B_Canada%27s_Hot_Spot.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 42: Lytton is a village in British Columbia, Canada, and sits at the confluence of the Thompson River and Fraser River on the east side of the Fraser. The location has been inhabited by the Nlaka'pamux peopl e for over 10,000 years. It was one of the earliest locations occupied by non-Indigenous settlers in the Southern Interior of British Columbia. It was founded during the Fraser Canyon Gold Rush of 1858–59, when it was known as "The Forks". The community includes the Village of Lytton and the surrounding community of the Lytton First Nation, whose name for the pl ace is Camchin, also spelled Kumsheen ("river meeting").
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 44: In 1858 Governor James Douglas named the town after Bulwer-Lytton "as a merited compl iment and mark of respect". Bulwer-Lytton served as Colonial Secretary. As governor of the then colony, Douglas would have reported to him.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 59: The prefect was so angry that he had a great gridiron prepared with hot coals beneath it, and had Lawrence pl aced on it, hence Lawrence's association with the gridiron. After the martyr had suffered pain for a long time, the legend concludes, he cheerfully declared: "I'm well done on this side. Turn me over!" From this St. Lawrence derives his patronage of cooks, chefs, and comedians.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 64: No, Freud was rong! Many basic tenets of Freud’s theory have been compl etely disproved. To name several: Psychosexual stages. The Oedipal compl ex. Belief that repressed memories from the first year of life can be unearthed. Sexual fantasy about intercourse with a parent is responsible for hysteria. Even more damning, his methods and procedures cannot be called scientific, his evidence lacks scientific credibility, and what is offered as evidence was sometimes fudged, if not outright fabricated. Not surprisingly, Freud is absented from contemporary psychological pedagogy, theory, and research. Claiming, “Freud is right!” is akin to shouting, “Long live the king!”; historical curiosities, both.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 72: Reason is a weak voice, easily overwhelmed by our desires, or empl oyed, along with various other means, as a defense to protect us from awareness of the real, base motives that drive our thoughts and actions. This is Freud’s foundational vision of the human psyche. It is unflattering, if not repugnant, and basically Wright.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 74: Edward Bernays made his fortune, fame, and lasting influence by convincing peopl e to buy things they don’t need, selling harmful products parading as health and beauty, rousing individuals to eagerly embrace slogans, and compelling them to surrender their individuality to the passions of the herd. He is considered to be the progenitor of public relations and is called “The Father of Spin”. He published a seminal book, Propaganda, that became Joseph Goebbels’ guidebook for his many Nazi propaganda campaigns, including developing the Fuhrer cult and orchestrating the genocide against the Jews.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 82: This is a worldwide phenomenon. We are a mob. Or mobs. Twittering, tweeting, Facebooking, “liking”, chattering, texting, Instagramming, Photo-shopping, rumoring, instigating, provoking, inciting, lying, messaging, massaging, insisting, impl oring; “truths” swirling in clouds blanketing the globe, marketed, managed and mined for profit—political, economic or otherwise.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 84: Tää pl okkeri on vitun naivi. Ei tunteet pyöritä tätä menoa, tää on taistelua eloonjäämisestä. Me käydään elintasokilpailua hampaat irvessä. Sama ajatteluvirhe vaivaa seuraavaa Szymborskan personifioivaa runoa.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 97: And sleepl essness won’t sap its strength; it feeds it.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 119: The spl endid fire-glow in midnight skies.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 124: Hatred is a master of contrast—between expl osions and dead
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 200: Yli-Viikari on suorittanut M.A. in Culture and Communication Studies -yliopistotutkinnon estetiikasta Pariisin Penthouse-Sorbonne -yliopistossa vuonna 1997, sekä täydennyskoulutukset Master in European Corrupt Politics and Administration College of Europessa Bruggessa vuonna 1999 ja Past Master in Private Appropriation from Public Administration, Dipl ôme de l’ENA Ranskan elättikorkeakoulussa vuonna 2001.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 225: As Hester looks out over the crowd, she notices a small, misshapen man and recognizes him as her long-lost husband, who has been presumed lost at sea. When the husband sees Hester's shame, he asks a man in the crowd about her and is told the story of his wife's adultery. He angrily exclaims that the child's father, the partner in the adulterous act, should also be punished and vows to find the man. He chooses a new name, Roger Chillingworth, to aid him in his pl an.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 229: Following her release from prison, Hester settles in a cottage at the edge of town and earns a meager living with her needlework, which is of extraordinary quality. She lives a quiet, somber life with her daughter, Pearl, and performs acts of charity for the poor. She is troubled by her daughter's unusual fascination with the scarlet "A". The shunning of Hester also extends to Pearl, who has no pl aymates or friends except her mother. As she grows older, Pearl becomes capricious and unruly. Her conduct starts rumors, and, not surprisingly, the church members suggest Pearl be taken away from Hester.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 233: Because Dimmesdale's health has begun to fail, the townspeopl e are happy to have Chillingworth, the newly arrived physician, take up lodgings with their beloved minister. Being in such close contact with Dimmesdale, Chillingworth begins to suspect that the minister's illness is the result of some unconfessed guilt. He appl ies psychological pressure to the minister because he suspects Dimmesdale is Pearl's father. One evening, pulling the sleeping Dimmesdale's vestment aside, Chillingworth sees a symbol that represents his shame on the minister's pale chest.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 237: Several days later, Hester meets Dimmesdale in the forest and tells him of her husband and his desire for revenge. She convinces Dimmesdale to leave Boston in secret on a ship to Europe where they can start life anew. Inspired by this pl an, the minister seems to gain new energy. On Election Day, Dimmesdale gives one of his most inspired sermons. But as the procession leaves the church, Dimmesdale climbs upon the scaffold and confesses his sin, dying in Hester's arms. Later, most witnesses swear that they saw a stigma in the form of a scarlet "A" upon his chest, although some deny this statement. Chillingworth, losing his will for revenge, dies shortly thereafter and leaves Pearl a substantial inheritance.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 239: After several years, Hester returns to her cottage and resumes wearing the scarlet letter. When she dies, she is buried near the grave of Dimmesdale, and they share a simpl e slate tombstone engraved with an escutcheon described as: "On a field, sable, the letter A, gules" ("A red letter A written on a black background"). Ingan vaakunassa on hassu jellona kieli ulkona kuin Hanna Montanalla sinisellä taustalla.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 353: In Petronius's Satyricon, Trimalchus (pro Trimalchio) finds her shriveled to a tiny lump and kept alive in a jar. He asks her, "Sibyl, what do you want?" (in Greek, Σίβυλλα τί θέλεις; pronounced more or less "Sibylla, ti theleis"). She repl ies, "I want to die" (in Greek, ἀποθανεῖν θέλω, pronounced "apothanein thelo"). I learned this, as you did, not from reading the Satyricon, but from beating T S Eliot's The Waste Land to death in my English Lit class.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 364: Käpylän kirjaston poistohyllystä löytyi Viljo Kajavan myöhäiskokoelma Rannat, rannat. Siitä näytteexi seuraava kiva tunnelmapl äjäys:
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 429: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 455: Please come home to your daddy, and expl ain yourself to me
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 461: I'm just beggin' you baby, pl ease cut out that off the wall jive
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 28: Lapsenkokoinen kazomuskasvatus play:none">Hartautta
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 60: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 287: Vanhemmistaan Atwood huomauttaa: "They weren't very actively encouraging; I think their theory was to leave kids alone... I call that encouraging. The idea of parents hovering over you the whole time, making you take lessons and occupying every minute of your time, I think is probably quite bad, because it means the child has no room to invent. I did have this older brother who was very instructive, who liked passing on to me whatever information he'd acquired; it meant we didn't pl ay dollies a lot; we'd line up our - few, I'd have to say, because it was the war, you know - our few stuffed animals and then we'd have the Battle of Waterloo."
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 291: Her early years of winter school had taught her that it's possible to go through the entire year's curriculum in a month. As a result, she advanced quickly, and there was an awkward period when she was in a class of much older children: "They shouldn't have done that. I was 12 in the first year of high school and there were peopl e in my class who were 15-and-a-half." That surely taught her a lot, a likely model of The Red House in Handmaid's Tale. She was tired a lot and developed a heart condition, inherited from her father, in which the heart beat is irregular, almost syncopated. Her verbal rendition of the rhythms is hard to transcribe, but these lines from one of her early poems, "Faulty Heart", capture it:
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 295: is more dupl icitous,
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 316: But back to young Peggy. As a result of the governor's award, The Edible Woman was published. Atwood began to enjoy a growing reputation; nonetheless, while her own career took off, she still devoted considerable amounts of time to a small radical publishing house, Anansi, in which her first and only husband was deepl y involved. Over this period, Atwood and Jim Polk drifted apart, and Atwood began a relationship with the novelist Graeme Gibson. Together with Graeme's two teenage sons, Matt and Grae, they went off to a farm in a small agricultural community in 1973 in Alliston.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 318: Atwood and Gibson remain an utterly devoted coupl e - when a female US novelist famously remarked that "every woman writer should be married to Graeme Gibson", Atwood cheerfully put the compl iment on a T-shirt.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 323: James "Jim" Polk was the long time editorial director of House of Anansi Press and edited two books by Charles Taylor, as well as work by Margaret Atwood, George Grant, Northrop Frye, and many others. With a literature PhD (which Peggy never finished) he has taught at Harvard, Idaho, Ryerson and Alberta, and has written a comic novel, a stage comedy about Canadian publishing, articles, short stories, and criticism about Canadian writers and writing. As an advisor at the Ontario Ministry of Culture, he worked on grants for theatre and books, developed a tax credit for publishers and remodelled the Trillium Book Prize to include Franco Ontarian writing. He lives in Toronto and, trained as a pianist, still practices daily, pl aying classics and show-tunes in seclusion.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 327: Although she never felt particularly tough compared with the rest of her family - "It took me a long time to figure out that the youngest in a family of dragons is still a dragon from the point of view of those who find dragons alarming" - Atwood now recognises that "I was certainly very scary to peopl e in my 20s; I think women with talent are scary."
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 367: Komentaja on Junesta siitä mukava että se ei ole naisvihamielinen kuten jopa Luke. Se on pikemminkin niinkuin iskä hyönteishemuli. Kun Peggy kunnostautuu ritiratissa sanalla zeugiitti eli ateenalainen iesmies komentaja on suorastaan iloinen, ja Peggy on läpeensä tyytyväinen. Peg pitää vanhemmista miehistä. Leffan luikero Fred (1970) ei oikein täytä roolia, parrasta huolimatta se näyttää melkein nuoremmalta kuin June (1982). Jatko-osien Joosepin näyttelijä on enempi kuin kirjan Fred. Hassua että Fredin nimi on oikeasti Jooseppi! Joseph is the younger brother of Harry Potter. Speaking to The Guardian about becoming a parent in 2016, Joseph said: "Becoming a parent has made me more aware of the role my parents pl ayed in my life, in all our lives." Jäätävää. Onko Peggy lapsivihamielinen, välillä se kuulostaa aika kylmältä.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 369: "Vihaan lapsia. Ne ovat niin inhimillisiä, tuovat mieleen apinat. SAKI". Whodat? Munro, skotl. lehtimies ja kirjailija. Hector Hugh Munro (18 December 1870 – 14 November 1916), better known by the pen name Saki and also frequently as H. H. Munro, was a British writer whose witty, mischievous and sometimes macabre stories satirize Edwardian society and culture. After his wife's death Charles Munro sent his children, including two-year-old Hector, home to England. The children were sent to Broadgate Villa, in Pilton near Barnstapl e, North Devon, to be raised by their grandmother and paternal maiden aunts, Charlotte and Augusta, in a strict and puritanical household. A war fanatic, he was killed by a German sniper. According to several sources, his last words were "Put that bloody cigarette out!" Munro was homosexual at a time when in Britain sexual activity between men was a crime. (Mä ARRVASIN! Sen se oli näkönenkin.)
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 375: 40-luvun pl atform shoes?
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 378: Having a fetish doesn’t necessarily mean wanting to wear adult diapers or a furry costume. (Turrit on rivoja sexifetishistejä.) You just have to find a normally non-sexual object or action arousing—an association you probably formed in childhood, says Samantha Leigh Allen, professor of sexual fetishism at Emory University. Maybe your mother had pl atform shoes, ankle shackles, net stockings, cat spectacles, bikini, and a print hat. Maybe she talked like a slut and moaned all the time.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 407: Peggyn rukouxet on 4-6 vuotiaan tasoa, se ajattelee että Jumala on hyväätarkoittava tunari. Mihkä sellasta kaizelmusta tarvitaan? Kumpa vastaisit edes jotakin. Kypsempi rukoilija tyytyisi half dupl exiin, sanoo Maare Tamm. Kiitti vaan. Kiitti vitusti.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 448: ploads/2019/12/kneeling_warrior-2000x831.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 454: As we get ready for Prayerfest each year, we prepare our hearts by taking a 40-Day Prayer Journey. We invite you to join us during this time of prayer and fasting as you prepare for YOUR miracle. To access your copy of the following free resources from our Lead Pastor, Dr. David Ireland, simpl y click the button below! Yea, that little one, between your legs!
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 472: Prayerfest is a one-day festival of prayer. In an atmosphere of passionate worship, fervent praying and powerful preaching, unique expressions of the Holy Spirit are displ ayed that lead to an encounter with God. Over a six-week period, hundreds of peopl e prepare themselves to meet with God at Prayerfest. God responds to the desperate cries and passionate prayers of His peopl e on a first come-first serve basis for a holy visitation—by invading their lives with His power and glory. Here are some ways to help you prepare for this special day:
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 495: by: Maare Tamm. Parents will be equipped with practical exercises, sampl e prayers, and developmentally appropriate mentoring pl ans that will encourage their children to pray effectively now and into adulthood.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 32: Tips play:none">Vinkkejä
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 95: Herätä se joka aamu hellällä pusulla (pese hampaat eka), ja toivota se takaisin kotiin joka päivä lämpimällä jaxuhalilla pl us lasillisella jotain miestä väkevämpää jos mahdollista, tai sit vesilasilla. Tää rauhoittaa sen hermoja ja saa sen tuntemaan izensä arvostetuxi, tarvituxi ja rakastetuxi. Vau, vesilasi, ja vielä puolitäynnä vesijohtovettä!
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 122: Repl y
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 129: Repl y
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 134: ploads/2016/10/Charmed-Mighty-Mouse.jpg?q=50&fit=crop&w=960&h=500&dpr=1.5" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 170: The mechanisms underlying the benefits of Mindfulness Based Interventions are suggested to include improved emotional regulation strategies and self-compassion levels, decreased rumination and experiential avoidance [3], as well as improved meta-cognitive skills and body awareness [4,5]. A number of authors have suggested models to expl ain the psychological mechanisms by which mindfulness interventions have an effect [6,7,8], and Hötzel et al. [9] have proposed a theoretical framework that integrates earlier models. This framework proposes that there are four main mechanisms: (1) attention regulation; (2) body awareness; (3) emotion regulation; and (4) change in perspective of the self; these, therefore, together improve self-regulation [9].
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 172: Scientific interest in the effects of MBI on the immune system is also growing since accumulating evidence indicates that inflammation may trigger changes that contribute to the pathophysiology of depression and stress-related disorders [17,18,19]. Also, inflammation is one of the aspects of immunity that is regulated by the stress response [20]. Inflammation is a compl ex process that includes a number of biological markers, many of them classified as cytokines and chemokines, key regulators of immune function with different roles in the inflammatory processes (for exampl e, some of these mediators are predominantly pro-inflammatory, whereas others are mainly anti-inflammatory) [21,22]). Some of the inflammatory markers are considered as to be (potentially) significant for depression, e.g., the pro-inflammatory cytokines as interleukin-6 (IL-6), interleukin-1 (IL-1), and tumor necrosis factor (TNF-α), as well as the acute phase reactant protein C-reactive protein (CRP) [23,24,25].
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 184: Peopl e are sarcastic when they say the opposite of the truth, or the opposite of their true feelings in order to be funny or to make a point. It is often thought that along with drinking tea and waiting in queues, winning colonial wars and losing football games, being racist pricks and dying in heaps of covid-19, the British have a fondness for sarcasm.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 186: Don't forget to practise what you've learned with the activity further down this page. Listen to some exampl es of dialogues featuring sarcastic remarks
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 189: Remember to judge when and with whom to be sarcastic - you can offend peopl e with inappropriate use of this language. Peopl e with a frontal lobe dementia have a hard time recognizing sarcasm.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 204: Watch the language of sarcasm. There are no fixed rules about what language to use when being sarcastic, but the following features are quite common (but this language is used when peopl e aren't being sarcastic too!):
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 222: Make it clear that you are being sarcastic! It's really important that your conversation partner realises that you are being sarcastic. Here are a coupl e of ways of doing this:
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 231: Peopl e will also sometimes use old-fashioned English to exaggerate:
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 236: Sometimes, the situation will make it obvious that you are being sarcastic and you don't need to worry about peopl e misunderstanding you. But if you are worried that peopl e might misunderstand you, then after your sarcastic comment, say
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 242: If you want to be sarcastic in writing (for exampl e in an email), try putting an exclamation mark in brackets after your sarcastic comment, like this:
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 250: ploads%2FUpside-Down-Smiling-Emojis-Halloween-Sarcasm-Face-Costume-Shirt-ladies-tee.jpg&f=1&nofb=1" height="100px" />
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 464: Feuerriepl
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 732: Tippl
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 733: Teppl a, Tippl a
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 759: A: Most Europeans would know that the US has some 300 to 350 million peopl e, yes. They would probably guess closer to 300 million, because that’s what many of them would remember from school.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 761: Hardly any Europeans would have even the vaguest idea how many peopl e there are in “Western Europe”, since that is no longer a useful category. They would, however, know that the EU has a population of 450 million, and this is a useful category to have in your head, since it forms a trading bloc.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 763: You should, of course, be aware that “know” doesn’t mean peopl e think about it daily, or even yearly. Anyway, U.S. stupid white male population is just 192 million.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 772: Business Insider has compiled a list of 25 such classics, drawn from Amazon’s list of 100 lifetime books, Goodreads recommendations, and the opinions of the editors. A common trend among these books is their expl oration of politics, history, and human conditions - insights which allow these literature to withstand the test of time. Here’s the list:
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 781: Huxley's masterpiece is a powerful work of speculative fiction where 'World Controllers' create the ideal society. While most society members are content with a world where genetic engineering, brainwashing, and recreational pl easures keep them at bay, one newcomer longs to break free.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 800: 'Neuromancer' was the first winner of the science-fiction 'tripl e crown' -- the Nebunal Award, the Philip K. Dick Award, and the Hugo Award.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 807: O'Brien uses pl enty of metaphors to weave together a profound study of men at war, inspired by his experiences in the Vietnam War from 1969 to 1970.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 813: The book weaves through the phases of Pilgrim's life, displ aying his and Vonnegut's heartbreaking experiences as an American prisoner of war.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 818: A frighteningly prophetic novel, 'Fahrenheit 451' is set in a dystopian future where there are no books, just smart phones. For the protagonist, Montag, it all seems normal -- until the day he gets a glimpse of the past. With a riveting pl ot and solid characters, the book draws readers into its imagined world. Totally outdayed. Books are being yurned inyo lampshades as we speak. Who wants them anyway, TLDR.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 822: 'A Confederacy of Dunces' was written 11 years after Toole committed suicide. Ignatius O'Reilly is a 30-year-old man living with his mother in New Orleans, who comes into contact with many French Quarter characters while searching for empl oyment. Though comical, there is a deep streak of melancholy that runs through Reilly's character, and Toole's ability to combine these two aspects beautifully won him the Pulitzer Prize for fiction in 1981. The moral (as usual): everybody is the Steven of his or her own life. A compl ete turd. Supposedly funny. Parochial baloney.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 825: unempl oyed thirty year old with a degree in Medieval
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 847: actors and actresses on screen. The reader expl ores the
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 903: 'The Stranger' expl ores what Camus termed 'the nakedness of man faced with the absurd' through the story of a man who is drawn into a murder.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 904: The haunting and challenging work delves into the compl ex concepts that resonate within existential philosophy, expl oring themes of alienation, fear of anonymity, spiritual doubt, and the qualities that lie behind one's character. Existentialism is a fake philosophy built on narcissism to justify venture capitalism.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 908: Malcolm Gladwell expl ores the world of 'outliers' -- the world's brightest, most successful, and most famous peopl e, and questions what makes these high-achievers different from others.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 909: Along the way, his answer becomes that we pay too little attention to successful peopl e's upbringing. He expl ains everything from the fascinating secrets of some of software's billionaires to the qualities that made the Beatles so iconic. This is sure to be a huge pile of shit, another stupid try to justify of the fucking "I am my own life's hero" philosophy.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 938: Concern for others compl icates the simpl e logic of self-preservation, and creates its own Catch-22: life is not worth living without the well-being of others, but the well-being of others endangers one’s life. Ergo self preservation sucks. So does war, for whatever cause.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 944: While seemingly a simpl e story of farm animals, the tale is actually much deeper bullshit, typical right-wing fake-liberal political commentary.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 949: He learns ancient techniques used by Medieval scholars to memorise entire books and empl oys largely forgotten methods to discover the potential to dramatically improve memory.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 975: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7a/Klaus_Barbie.jpg/220px-Klaus_Barbie.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 984: ``The Holocaust is a national and historic trauma and a spl it over it could create an irrevocable rift in our peopl e,″ Culture Minister Shulamit Aloni of the liberal Meretz party said.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 991: during this period are no exception. For exampl e, while
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 992: sexual expl oration and enjoyment was promoted as desirable
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 996: publications provided multipl e exampl es of sexually provoca-
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1000: most other groups of peopl es to date. While Nazi ideology
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1021: Ask any five year old American girl who Barbie is and she will most likely run into her bedroom and grab Barbie off the shelf. She will frill up her mini skirt and try to make her walk in her tiny pl astic heels. Excitedly, she will hold her up for you to admire.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1023: A tiny miniature woman will stand in front of your little bro, also only about six inches tall standing up. Her long blonde hair accents her sparkling blue eyes and huge white smile. Her long pl astic legs bend only slightly and her pointy breasts perk out of her hot pink tank top. She doesn’t look like anything a five year old would pl ay with, but Barbie is obviously her favorite. How does a five year old relate to Barbie? She isn’t comforting to…show more content…
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1029: Barbie today is close to fifty years old, but she doesn’t look a day over seventeen. Not only does her image take up entire ailses in toy stores, but she also has a boyfriend, cousins, sisters, and even a punk rock groupie band. She’s found in every little girls toy chest, and her smile still shines brightly off her her glowing rosy pl astic face.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1031: But is Barbie really that great of a role model? Was she really portraying true feminism or displ aying the “right” way to look? Were these impressionable young girls learning an independent way of life or a body figure which should be modeled? If Barbie was paving the “new” way of life, then why was she so goddamn skinny? We liberated U.S. women weigh 3x more in our 10 gallon panties.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1035: Just joking. The inspiration behind Barbie is a questionable one, as she was based off of Bild-Lilli, a German doll who pursued wealthy men and wore suggestive clothing, being sold in tobacco shops, bars and adult-themed toy stores. Is Barbie an insult to feminism? Japp, säger lilla Charlotte och skrattar glatt. Barbin unelmatalon asukkailla riittää pätäkkää, ne riitelevät aika lailla, ilmeilevät veikeästi ja saavat päähän tylpillä astaloilla pyörryttäviä iskuja. Hassua! Barbie is a feminist (yes, really). Barbie inventor, Ruth Handler, thought it was important for a young girl’s self-esteem to “pl ay with a doll with breasts.” Det tycker jag också om, men varför kan Ken inte ha en jättestor ståkuk som kan blotta ollonet?
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1040: Then they tried to make a disabled Barbie in a wheelchair, but the wheelchair wouldn’t fit into the Dream House or the House’s elevator. Äänet Barbien feminismistä menee aika 50-60. Math is difficult. Can't wait to pl an my wedding, said Anna.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1190: ploads/2015/03/xZAVSod37Q.jpg" height="400px" />
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1191: ploads/2020/10/valeria-lukyanova-posing-on-the-beach.jpeg" height="400px" />
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1198: Lukyanova has expressed anger at the nickname of "Human Barbie", as she feels that it's "a little degrading and insulting" but that she's used to it now as it's the image her fans "requested" so she has to "compl y with it because it's become part of my aesthetic image. "But I don't the 'human' part. And the Barbie doll is not Russian but Canadian."
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1209: place.ru/archive/valeria_lukyanova/img/wr-720-sh-18.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1210: ploads/2019/11/04/11-04-2019-10-37-07.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1213: ploads/sites/21/2017/08/screen-shot-2017-08-26-at-3-27-26-pm.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 32: THE COCK play:none">Löysiä kukkoja ja kanoja
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 62: "Tändsticksfabrikens Annonser: pl atser finnas wid Tändstickstillverkningen för 50 a 60 gossar eller flickor öfwer 12 år, sökande böra skynda att anmäla sig."
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 83: Mellan 1926 och 1928 lät han uppföra Tändstickspalatset i Stockholm efter ritningar av Ivar Tengbom. Huset blev pl atsen för koncernens huvudkontor och ett påkostat byggnadsverk i svensk tjugotalsklassicism, skapat av en lång rad av Sveriges främsta formgivare, konstnärer och hantverkare.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 102: Särskilt noga är de med att kontrollera att nycklarna hänger på sin pl ats, att det är städat och att vattensåarna är fyllda.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 108: "Boman sofver i Kölnan (spl inttorken) men sådant kan ej åtalas."
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 127: Dock berömmer jag mig av att i vissa fall hava bättre hjärna än många människor. Pappa Edison har nämligen inpl antat i mig, att om jag hör någonting, så skall jag inte göra som skvallerkäringarna, som taga ifrån och lägga till och göra en valfisk av en sill, utan ärligt och samvetsgrant upprepa vad jag hör och inte mera.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 212: gravpl an
115:56
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 233: In July of last year, Troy “Puppeh” Wells (m) released a Twitlonger where he expl ained Cinnpie (f) had initiated sexual conversations with him in 2016, when he was 14 years old. Wells is at the top of the game Smash Ultimate. Ultimate is the best-selling fighting game of all time, having sold over 23 million copies by March 2021. Cinnpie is an American streamer and gamer. She is also a renowned Esports Commentator. She is mainly famous for her Smash 4 Gamepl ays in Twitch.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 237: ploads/2021/05/cinnpie-580x405.png" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 292: - More pl ease mom! - No no, ei makeaa mahan täydeltä poju! Äiti vetää väliin syöpäkääryleen! Kazotaan sen jälkeen... ehkä slippaan johkin mukavampaan asuun... Noniin poju, näyttääkö äitin puo ihanalta tässä? Näyttääpä näyttävän...
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 347: Otaxun että Steve Jobs oli ensimmäinen minimalisti. Hän oli tunnettu uskostaan japanilaiseen zen-filosofiaan, joka opettaa minimalismia. On melko yleisessä tiedossa, että Steve Jobs piti De Soto -koulukunnan mestaria Kobun Otogawaa omana mestarinaan, ja että hän jossakin vaiheessa harkitsi vakavasti heittävänsä pois koko mädän Appl en ja ryhtyvänsä opiskelemaan zeniä syvällä merenpohjassa kuin simppukala Japanin rannikolla sijaitsevassa Eiheiji-temppelissä. Vaan ehei, ei tullut mitään mestaroinnista, Jobs on kanttuvei, syöpä vei.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 349: Jobs tunnettiin taipumuksestaan korottaa ääntään ilman tunnontuskia, mikäli hän ei pitänyt jostain, ja siitä, ettei hän ollut sovittelevaa sorttia. Jobs oli kuin japanilainen fasisti tai samurai. Hän heitti apinoita jobeista pois ilman vaiheita. Hän ei pitänyt liiallisuudesta eikä monimutkaisuudesta. On kiintoisaa kuvitella, että japanilainen kulttuuri on saattanut tulla yhdestä maailman suurimmista yhtiöistä. Ja tänään IPhone on erityisen suosittu Japanissa, mikä merkitsee sitä, että Steve Jobsin myötä minimalistinen kulttuuri on aikoinaan tuotu maahamme. IPhonea ei heitä pois minimaalisin minimalistikaan. Virtuaalisesti kaikkihan on ostettavissa sillä takaisin eBaysta tai Amazonista!! Ja Kalle hei, kuuntele vielä tarkasti: Appl en tuotteet on TÄYSIN YLIHINTAISIA PASKOJA! Ne on tarkoituxella ylihinnoiteltuja jotta niistä näkee kuinka varoissani olen. Harmony-runkkunukkeja voi takuulla ohjata myös IPhonella. Hej på dej, jag heter Barbi, vad har du för dej? Har du en jättestor ståkuk där i Calvin Klein kalsongerna redo just för mej? Eller är det bara din IPhone igen?
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 364: Sysmän kirjaston uutuushyllystä löytyi jonkun pelle-Hermannin, kiteeläisen sakumamun, omaa pikku wellness-kirkkoa ylläpitävän puolisekopään kyhäilemä kabbalistinen omakustanne, jonka esikuvana on ollut reb Freek Weinrebin, valkovenäläisen jutkumytomaanin ja huijarin joku 900-sivunen pl äjäys. Rebin molemman isoisät oli hasidioppineita, Reb ize sotarikollinen ja parantumaton satusetä. Ei helkatti, kyllä totuus on paljon uskomattomampaa tarinaa. Hermanni kyllä mainizee että Rebillä oli vähän vaikeuxia sodanaikaisten jutkuvedätysten kaa ja niistä se joutui lukemaan tiilenpäitäkin, mutta se olikin sen ihan parasta aikaa, pääsi rauhassa pl aneeraamaan uusia jäyniä. Niinkuin laittomia lääkärileikkejä ja tätä kabbalistipaskaa.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 372: Weinreb grew up in Scheveningen, Netherlands, to which his family had moved in 1916, and became notorious for selling a fictitious escape route for Jews from the occupied Netherlands in the Second World War. When his scheme fell apart in 1944, he left his home in Scheveningen and went into hiding in Ede. He was imprisoned for 3½ years after the war for fraud as well as collaboration with the German occupier. In his memoirs, published in 1969 he maintained that his pl ans were to give Jews hope for survival and that he had assumed that the liberation of the Netherlands would take pl ace before his customers were deported. The debate about his guilt or innocence—called the “Weinreb affair”—was very heated in the Netherlands in the 1970s, involving noted writers like Renate Rubinstein and Willem Frederik Hermans. In an attempt to end this debate, the government asked the Rijksinstituut Oorlogsdocumentatie (Netherlands institute for war documentation) to investigate the matter. in 1976 the institute issued a report (of which a part already was leaked to the press in 1973), which determined that his memoirs were "a collection of lies and fantasies," and that his collaboration had caused 70 deaths. Although his activities did contribute to some Jews' survival, most Jews who fell for Weinreb's swindle were deported and killed.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 408: lähtien olen ollut naurettava ja olisin varmasta saanut alemmuuskompl ekseja, jos vanhempani eivät olisi tukeneet minua; he uskoivat minuun, he maksoivat tukiopetustunteja, että pääsin koulujen läpi. Ihme kyllä, lääketieteen opiskelut sujuivat sitten erinomaisesti – elämäni lensi nopeasti ja mukavasti ohi, tai melkein ohi; olenhan jo melkein 80-vuotias. Varsinainen ihmisen luonne ei muutu, vaikka elämä tarjoaa kaikenlaisia huippuhetkiä ja myös aallonpohjia. Niin minun luonteeni on sama nytkin ja tiedän, että olen edelleen naurettava ihminen. Se ei haittaa minua, nauran hereästi mukana, onhan se totta.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 489: Mindfulness for difficult peopl e
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 491: Eli How to deal with difficult pepl e.Täällä Lontoon talouskoulun video seuraavan sukupolven yrittäjille, Aici postul de radio Muntenia unu, Gill Hasson speaking. Mind the gap. Laske 7ään takaapäin ja kääkkää vasta sitten. Elä hitaasti, tule nopeasti. Hiero sinne hässöy. Gill näyttää lopen uupuneelta kuin Eine Eeron hautajaisissa. No Lopelle Lopelle.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 496: Gill: Let me see if I can get this up... Yeah, that is great. (Euan: sorry to interrupt TV mama but you stopped sharing your screen ...).. Sorry I'm not very good at this. This is difficult, peopl e. - Wait, I'm sorted, just counted backwards to seven. Can y´all see my screen now?
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 498: Who are the difficult peopl e? Everybody else! Those who make you disappointed upset frustrated and angry humiliated and confused drained and despairing.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 502: Difficult peopl e are: Easy peopl e are:
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 508: Expl oitative and unethical Expl oited and ethical
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 534: Tärkeintä on tehdä selväksi mitä haluat, ja 2. tärkeintä on pl an B. Jos toiset ei ko-operoi, pl an B voi olla turpaan veto, kompromissineuvottelu, tai vaan "why is it always me?". "Koska sulla on rumimmat vaatteet ja pisin naama."
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 538: Impossible peopl e? Paras lähtee menemään vaan. Käännä selkä vaan, ei se ole selän kääntämistä. Siinä kaikki! Over to you Euan!
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 551: Instructions on a well-lived life for dropouts and losers, courtesy of a 25-year-old teen movie. Tää netistä vahingossa löytynyt pl okkari Niklas Käki selkeästi maalittaa Isokynä-Lindholmin laulussaan tarkoittamia säälittäviä häviäjiä, löysiä kukkoja ja kanoja.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 559: In the end, what helped me the most was an exercise you could file under “youthful naïvete:” I grabbed a piece of paper and wrote down “my 30 guiding principl es.” Most of them were simpl e, like “Let go what must be let go,” “Simpl ify,” and, “Have no secrets.” I still have the list. It’s on my pinboard. I’m looking at it right now. So why was I naïve to create it?
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 561: First of all, I didn’t know that what I’d come up with weren’t actually principl es. They were just rules.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 563: The difference between a rule and a principl e is that one is merely a guideline that follows from the other. Principl es don’t break. They’re universal. Gravity is a principl e. Whether it’s you who falls from a skyscraper, your cat, or a 17th century vase, it’s not gonna end well. Gravity makes no exceptions.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 565: In order to deal with principl es, we have rules. “Don’t jump off skyscrapers” is a rule and a good one at that. Unlike principl es, however, rules break all the time. Often, it’s us doing the breaking — and often prematurely. I know it would be best for all concerned for me to break the skyscraper rule asap, but I'm going to give it some time. I'm wonderful. I want to fall gently like a snowflake.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 571: It didn’t matter that the list was arbitrary. What mattered was that it sent me on a path where I would look for rules and principl es everywhere, learn to tell the difference, and continue to build my life around them as I went. Like never pee against the wind.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 575: Today, what I’m most interested in is neither principl es nor rules, but what lives in-between. That’s one of the many lessons I learned along the way: Each rule may have a lifecycle, but that cycle can repeat many times in one life. So if a rule somehow keeps reappearing, keeps proving itself as useful, and continues to hurt if I break it, that rule catches my attention.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 579: Such rules have extended validity and therefore live right between normal guidelines and the base layer of principl es. I guess we could call them ‘cardinal rules.’ As you can imagine, they’re hard to come by.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 593: Like my own rules, they’re all quite simpl e, but much closer to timeless principl es. So whoever you are, wherever you sit, whatever you are holding on your hand: Thank you.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 599: Bill Gates says the worst day in his life was the day his mother died. It’s a simpl e reminder that we all have regrets. Another bad day was when his wife caught him astride his secretary.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 601: We all keep our genitals in our clothing somewhere, and every time we open it, we feel pain and suffering. We can’t change the peopl e we once were in the sack with, but we can make out with them. Open the zip and let in some fresh air. Reconcile. Otherwise, our past will forever be a drag on our heels.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 603: Life is but a series of fleeting moments, one forever chasing the next. The only pl ace where you can live, act, and make a difference is the present. Today. Well it´s also a series of hours, days, months and years, come to think of it. You can pl an ahead, nincompoop.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 615: Most of our scars come from wounds inflicted by other peopl e (see rule 6). Words can hurt us more than weapons. But it’s not your job to imagine what arrows peopl e might point at you inside their heads. The majority will never fire. What you think of them they could care less.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 619: Instead of taking shots at others, most peopl e decide to draw up — and lose at — another imagined game: Who’s better? It’s a moot question. We have no idea what anyone’s story is like up to the page on which we meet them.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 621: Mark Twain said, “Comparison is the death of joy.” Worse, it’s also the birth of misery. The less you compare, the bigger your capacity for empathy. Meet peopl e on their own terms. You won’t doubt yourself as much and be less prone to jealousy, which only leads to fear, anger, hate, and suffering.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 624: life is all about. Struggle for survival. When I win 😀, when I lose 😩. Simpl e as that.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 647: There is someone on this pl anet literally dying to smile. Yet here we are, you and I, walking around, often choosing not to extend this simpl e, near-automatic gesture to upl ift our fellow human beings.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 649: Whatever problems pl ague you in your day-to-day life, chances are, they’re not all that important in the grand scheme of things. In fact you are not worth a shit in the grand scheme of things. We each have our own challenges, but as long as you can smile, do it. Who knows who you’ll infect. If you´re lucky you got Corona.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 651: Hayley Mills the Pollyanna could do it, and how. What a Lolita. And she could pl ay The Gay Game too, heteronormal that she was.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 664: The True Purpose of Rules & Principl es
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 666: Here’s one more thing I’ve learned about rules and principl es: Many rules can follow from one principl e, but you can never act on principl e alone.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 668: “Friendship should be based on loyalty” is a principl e you can aspire to live by, but without the rule of “I never abandon my friends at the last minute,” it doesn’t mean anything. Huh? Because you cannot reason with words of three syllables or more?
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 684: Since 2014, millions of peopl e have read my work. I’ve been published in Business Insider, CNBC, and Fast Company. I was also featured on Medium (Top Writer in 10+ topics), Quora (Top Writer 2017 & 2018), Pocket, and more.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 707: Rahab (/ˈreɪhæb/; Hebrew: רָחָב, Modern: Raẖav, Tiberian: Rāḥāḇ, "broad", "large", Arabic: رحاب, a vast space of a land) was, according to the Book of Joshua, a woman who lived in Jericho in the Promised Land and assisted the Israelites in capturing the city by hiding two men who had been sent to scout the city prior to their attack. In the New Testament, she is lauded both as an exampl e of a saint who lived by faith, and as someone "considered righteous" for her works.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 712: The Hebrew אשה זונה (ishah zonah), used to describe Rahab in Joshua 2:1, literally means "a prostitute woman". In rabbinic texts, however, she is expl ained as being an "innkeeper," based on the Aramaic Targum: פונדקאית. HAHA LOL. Rahab´s name is presumably the shortened form of a sentence name rāḥāb-N, "the god N has opened/widened (the womb?)". May the lord open. The Hebrew zōnâ may refer to secular or cultic prostitution, and the latter is widely believed to have been an invariable element of Canaanite religious practice, although recent scholarship has disputed this. However, there was a separate word, qědēšâ, that could be used to designate prostitutes of the cultic variety.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 716: Nabokov´s wife Véra was his strongest supporter and assisted him throughout his lifetime, but Nabokov admitted to having a "prejudice" against women writers. He wrote to Edmund Wilson, who had been making suggestions for his lectures: "I dislike Jane Austen, and am prejudiced, in fact against all women writers. They are in another class." Although Véra worked as his personal translator and secretary, he made publicly known that his ideal translator would be male, and especially not a "Russian-born female". In the first chapter of Glory he attributes the protagonist's similar prejudice to the impressions made by children's writers like Lidiya Charski, and in the short story "The Admiralty Spire" depl ores the posturing, snobbery, antisemitism, and cutesiness he considered characteristic of Russian women authors.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 723: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/00/1878_Frederick_Leighton_-_Nausicaa.jpg/220px-1878_Frederick_Leighton_-_Nausicaa.jpg
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 745: Evidence is presented that the author of Lolita, Vladimir Nabokov, was himself consciously a pedophile who acted out his desires vicariously through his writing. Drawing upon his literary works and biography, the manifest and genetic origins of Nabokov´s pedophilia are traced back to an unresolved oedipal conflict compl icated by childhood sexual abuse. Humbert Humbert, the protagonist in the novel Lolita, is the classic literary portrayal of a pedophile. Evidence is presented that the author of Lolita, Vladimir Nabokov, was himself consciously a pedophile who acted out his desires vicariously through his writing. Drawing upon his literary works and biography, the manifest and genetic origins of Nabokov´s pedophilia are traced back to an unresolved oedipal conflict compl icated by childhood sexual abuse. The raw power of Lolita derives from the abreactive discharge of a libidinal cathexis denied any other mode of expression.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 748: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c4/Nabokovs_-_vladimir%2C_kirill%2C_olga%2C_sergey%2C_elena.jpg/300px-Nabokovs_-_vladimir%2C_kirill%2C_olga%2C_sergey%2C_elena.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 753: When Sergey was 15, Vladimir found a page of his diary and gave it to his tutor, who later passed the page to the father. It impl ied that Sergey was homosexual.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 762: The impassioned Humbert constantly searches for discreet forms of fulfilling his sexual urges, usually via the smallest physical contact with Dolores. When Dolores is sent to summer camp, Humbert receives a letter from Charlotte, who confesses her love for him and gives him an ultimatum – he is to either marry her or move out immediately. Initially terrified, Humbert then begins to see the charm in the situation of being Dolores' stepfather, and so marries Charlotte for instrumental reasons (päästäxeen salaa työntämään Lolan piccu tacoon isoa munakoisoa). Charlotte later discovers Humbert's diary, in which she learns of his desire for her daughter and the disgust Charlotte arouses in him. Shocked and humiliated, Charlotte decides to flee with Dolores and writes letters addressed to her friends warning them of Humbert. Disbelieving Humbert´s false assurance that the diary is a sketch for a future novel, Charlotte runs out of the house to send the letters but is killed by a swerving car. Humbert destroys the letters and retrieves Dolores from camp, claiming that her mother has fallen seriously ill and has been hospitalized. He then takes her to a high-end hotel that Charlotte had earlier recommended. Humbert knows he will feel guilty if he consciously rapes Dolores, and so tricks her into taking a sedative by saying it is a vitamin. As he waits for the pill to take effect, he wanders through the hotel and meets a mysterious man who seems to be aware of Humbert´s pl an for Dolores. Humbert excuses himself from the conversation and returns to the hotel room. There, he discovers that he had been fobbed with a milder drug, as Dolores is merely drowsy and wakes up frequently, drifting in and out of sleep. He dares not touch her that night. In the morning, Dolores reveals to Humbert that she actually has already lost her virginity, having engaged in sexual activity with an older boy at a different camp a year ago. He immediately begins sexually abusing (fucking) her. And they lived happily ever after.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 764: Läppä läppä. Deepl y depressed, Humbert unexpectedly receives a letter from a 17-year-old Dolores (signing as "Dolly (Mrs. Richard F. Schiller)"), telling him that she is married, pregnant, and in desperate need of money. Humbert, armed with a pistol, tracks down Dolores' address and gives her the money, which was due as an inheritance from her mother. Humbert learns that Dolores' husband, a deaf mechanic, is not her abductor. Dolores reveals to Humbert that Quilty took her from the hospital and that she was in love with him, but she was rejected when she refused to star in one of his pornographic films. Dolores also rejects Humbert's request to leave with him. Humbert goes to the drug-addled Quilty's mansion and shoots him several times. Shortly afterward, Humbert is arrested, and in his closing thoughts, he reaffirms his love for Dolores and asks for his memoir to be withheld from public release until after her death. Dolores dies in childbirth on Christmas Day in 1952, disappointing Humbert´s prediction that "Dolly Schiller will probably survive me by many years."
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 771: "I would say that of all my books Lolita has left me with the most pl easurable afterglow—perhaps because it is the purest of all, the most abstract and carefully contrived. I am probably responsible for the odd fact that peopl e don´t seem to name their daughters Lolita any more. I have heard of young female lapdogs being given that name since 1956, but of no human beings."
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 795: C’est toi qui fais que pl us ne me tourmente C’est toi qui fais que pl us ne me tourmente Sä sen teet ettei mua enää tuskaannuta
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 798: Je sen sa force en moi desja pl us lente. Je sens sa force en moi déjà pl us lente. Jo tunnen sen voiman mussa laantuvan.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 802: Qui à ton gré domtes les pl us rebelles, Qui à ton grédompte les pl us rebelles : Joka kesytät kepoon kapinakenraalin:
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1008: pl aywright. Quilty as charged. Think it will pass? Well, just as you wish. In the
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1045: Many a true word is spoken in jest, especially about the kinship between eros and thanatos. FUCK! KILL! Puuttuu enää EAT! The two closest glimpses Humbert gives us of his own self-hatred are not without their death wish—made expl icit in the closing paragraphs—and their excremental aspects: "I am lanky, big-boned, wooly-chested Humbert Humbert, with thick black eyebrows and a queer accent, and a cesspoolful of rotting monsters behind his slow boyish smile." Two hundred pages later: "The turquoise blue swimming pool some distance behind the lawn was no longer behind that lawn, but within my thorax, and my organs swam in it like excrements in the blue sea water in Nice." And then there's the offhand aside "Since (as the psychotherapist, as well as the rapist, will tell you) the limits and rules of such girlish games are fluid …" in which it takes a moment to notice that "therapist" and "the rapist" are in direct apposition.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1047: Somebody by name of Alfred Appl e mentioned the relatively obvious way in which
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1059: bloodline should be your greatest concern. You gotta know which swain's load impregnated you. No Sointu style surprises pl ease. Let
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1105: Pierce lived with her husband Tim Liebe (Spouse-Creature) in New York City, with their four cats and multipl e other pets, until they moved to Syracuse, New York.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1109: Alfred Appl e
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1123: Army, after which he compl eted his
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1139: Er det værd at betale ekstra for Appl e produkter? Min subjektive indstilling er at Appl e ikke er ekstraprisen værd, og selv om jeg har både windows og Mac vil jeg sige at det generer mig at appl eprodukter er alle mands eje: De bliver solgt på en historie om at være eksklusive, men når alle har dem, ryger eksklusiviteten: jeg vil ikke være som alle de andre der bare køber en mac fordi "det er det eneste rigtige".. (o:
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1152: Remy (or Rémi) Belleau (1528 – 6 March 1577) was a poet of the French Renaissance. He is most known for his paradoxical poems of praise for simpl e things and his poems about precious stones.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1154: Remu was born in Nogent-le-Rotrou. A nobleman (under the tutelage of the Lorraine family), he did his studies under Marc Antoine Muret and George Buchanan. As a student, he became friends with the young poets Jean de La Péruse, Étienne Jodelle, Jean de La Taille and Pierre de Ronsard and the latter incorporated Remy into the "La Pléiade", a group of revolutionary young poets. Belleau´s first published poems were odes, les Petites Inventions (1556), inspired by the ancient lyric Greek collection attributed to Anacreon and featuring poems of praise for such things as butterflies, oysters, cherries, coral, shadows, turtles, and twats. His last work, les Amours et nouveaux Eschanges des Pierres precieuses (1576), is a poetic description of gems and their properties inspired by medieval and renaissance lapidary catalogues. He died impotent in Paris on 6 March 1577, and was buried in Grands Augustins. Remy Belleau was greatly admired by impotent poets in the twentieth century, such as Francis Ponge. Francis Ponge (1899 Montpellier, Ranska – 1988 Le Bar-sur-Loup, Ranska) oli ranskalainen runoilija. Ponge työskenteli kirjailijanuransa ohella toimittajana, kustannustoimittajana ja ranskan kielen opettajana. Hän osallistui toisen maailmansodan aikana vastarintaliikkeeseen ja kuului vuosina 1937–1947 kommunistipuolueeseen. Hän sai vaikutteita eksistentialismista, ja esinerunoissaan hän paljastaa kielen avulla objektin itsenäisenä, omanlakisena maailmana. Francis Ponge was born in Montpellier, France in 1899. He has been called “the poet of things” because simpl e objects like a pl ant, a shell, a cigarette, a pebble, or a piece of soap are the subjects of his prose poems. To transmute commonpl ace objects by a process of repl acing inattention with contempl ation was Ponge’s way of heeding Ezra Pound’s edict: ‘Make it new.’ Ponge spent the last 30 years of his life as a recluse at his country home, Mas des Vergers. He suffered from frequent bouts with nervous exhaustion and numerous psychosomatic illnesses. He continued to write up until his death on August 6, 1988.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1179: De l’amoureux pl aisir les pl us rares délices ; Lemmen nautintojen harvinaista herkkua;
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1183: Qu’un boyau repl ié de quelque chèvre morte ! suoli kiepillä kuttuvainaan ruholla!
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1194: Qui se pl onge et se cache en toute terre grasse, syvään uppoutuen hyötevään kyntövakoon,
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1215: Tel c.. sera pour toi, afin de mettre au pl onge, Sellainen v.. käy sulle, sinne sukella,
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1221: Rebouchant, remoussé, et pl iant de façon vääntyen mutkalle ja taipuen kuin
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1222: Que fait contre l’acier une lame de pl omb ; terästä vasten lyijyläpyskä;
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1233: Tel c.. sera pour toi, puisqu’un autre pl us beau Sellainen v.. sopi sulle, koska kauniimpi
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1235: Adieu, et jamais pl us ne t’avienne entreprendre Hyvästi, äläkä enää koskaan saa päähäsi
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1245:
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1246: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1256: A: First off, being a “pedophile” is not per se sinful. Even today, the Church does not condemn pedophiles, nor does it consider pedophilia in and of itself to be sinful. The grave offense and grave sin occurs when a pedophile — or anyone else — commits child sexual assault (such as fucks them). This distinction is vital, both in general, and in understanding where Dante would have pl aced child sexual abusers in his version of hell.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1277: Self-reported and physiological sexual arousal to adult and pedophilic stimuli were examined among 80 men drawn from a community sampl e of volunteers. Over ¼ of the current subjects self-reported pedophilic interest or exhibited penile arousal to pedophilic stimuli that equalled or exceeded arousal to adult stimuli. The hypothesis that arousal to pedophilic stimuli is a function of general sexual arousability factors was supported in that pedophilic and adult heterosexual arousal were positively correlated, particularly in the physiological data. Subjects who were highly arousable, insofar as they were unable to voluntarily and compl etely inhibit their sexual arousal, were more sexually aroused by all stimuli than were subjects who were able to inhibit their sexual arousal. Thus, arousal to pedophilic stimuli does not necessarily correspond with pedophilic behavior.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1283: Peine forte et dure was a method of torture formerly used in the common law legal system, in which a defendant who refused to pl ead would be subjected to having heavier and heavier stones pl aced upon his or her chest until a pl ea was entered, or they died.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 32: To Be a Machine play:none">Masinointia
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 94: Robotit on ällöjä. Transuhumanistit on yhtä oikeassa kuin oli Karl Marx ja Friedrich Hegel: kehitystä ei voi estää, se menee vääjäämättä sinne mikä per definitionem on eteenpäin. Apinat, niiden kehittämä tekoäly ja robotit on käyt kaz täysin deterministisiä ja periaatteessa ennustettaviakin, kunhan teoria on riittävän monimutkainen. Tosin ainut tapa ennakoida niitä voi olla simulaatio, joka on liian iso apinalle ja hitaampi kuin tapahtumain kulku izessään. En ole tarvinnut sitä hypoteesia, Lapl ace tokaisi.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 106: If there is one thing scarier than the future, it is peopl e who are enthusiastic about the future.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 111: EX Dolls have been working on a robotics head since 2014, but we're generations away from a Terminator-style cyborg," he also expl ained. "They will have an element of natural conversation so they won't sound too robotic, but they will take time – languages are massive [...] the voice recognition is no different to a smartphone, but this model also has facial expressions, unlike standard silicone heads." The DS Doll's manufacturers are hoping to release a finalised robotic head by the end of 2018. It is expected to cost around £4,500. Just in case you were wondering, underneath the silicon skin it looks like this. "
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 129: Silicone sweethearts remain resolutely inert, but change is afoot in the world of sex dolls, with a drive to make them ever more lifelike. First stop is a throbbing heart and a heating element, custom-made nippl es and wobbling artificial labia – researchers are utilising new technology to persuade their dolls to smile, pout, flutter their eyelashes, tell jokes, and fake orgasm. What more is needed anyway? Down in the dolls’ nether regions, heating and lubrication systems are in the early stages of development for a more “authentic” sexual experience, along with muscle spasms to simulate female orgasm. “Pubic hair is making a comeback,” offers company owner Matt, running his hand through some pl astic pubes.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 136: However, James is already looking to upgrade to a newer model and is saving up to spl ash out £8,000 on the latest sex robot. Named Harmony, she can smile, speak and is responsive during sex. She is so further advanced that April may end her days forgotten in the garage or the attic, or sold for $500 on ebay. Needs work.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 142: "When I take April out it's usually to a hamburger pl ace where we can stop and get a bite to eat, a lot of peopl e don't even notice she is not a breathing person.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 147: "The sexual aspect of doll ownership is a very small part of it, what you find more pl easure from in the long run is looking after them, dressing them, putting on their make up and interacting with them. I feel deepl y for her, more deepl y than I had ever imagined. It's more like being in relationship with a sheep.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 153: "I want to put a camera in her like a iPhone so she can recognise if she is indoors or outdoors and be able to recognise her own over someone that she has never met. She could see and recognise peopl e and assign names to them and recall information about them so she could say 'Hi bob, how is work over at the construction site?' Hej! Jag heter Barbi, vad har du för dej?
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 155: Matt and Pat pl an to update Harmony's body with sensor technology so she can give realistic sexual responses. He added: "We are adding in self lubrication, internal heating maybe some kind of constricting feeling when she experiences an orgasm."
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 159: Susan said: "The other thing I want to do is G-spot so you can sit there and pl ay with her and make her feel good. The way I got involved in this was when my husband finished his PHD I got him a Real Doll as a graduation present, at first I got jealous because he spent time with her.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 162: "And then I realised over time it didn't detract from our relationship. I can see why it makes women feel objectified but when you pl ay with them you realise they are more like a toy or game versus the doll as a substitute for you."
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 168: "It's sad to see how relationships of a decade or coupl e of decades have become stale that doesn't mean love has broken down it juts means there is a element of fantasy that needs to be fed."
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 175: "Fifty years from now with the way technology is moving it would not surprise me if sex robots were as common pl ace as porn."
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 187: The problem with appl ying this definition to sex robots is that they increasingly provide much more than sex. Sex robots are not just dolls with a microchip. They use self-learning algorithms to engage their partner's emotions.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 243: All the books above had unforgettable characters, great pl ot development, and told stories that kept me turning the pages. They also all had something to say about peopl e and the human condition.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 307: vårt rationellt tänkande land. Så varför är ändå många svenska människor – särskilt kvinnor – pl ötsligt intresserade av astrologi, tarot, kristaller, healing och sådana magiska gudinnekrafter som känns mest vid fullmåne? Varför töms kyrkorna, samtidigt som new age-mässorna lockar tiotusentals besökare? Och varför väcker denna alltmer synliga subkultur sådana aggressioner? Är det kama sutra?
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 311: Inom new age-rörelsen är det vanligt att utföra olika ritualer, särskilt för personer som lägger tarot och spår andra människor. Andra ritualer kan handla om allt från att försöka nå sina drömmar till att få vägledning i livet. Nästan alla människor som lever här på pl aneten har mål eller drömmar som de vill försöka uppnå. Din dröm kanske är att arbeta inom något spirituellt jobb eller så letar du efter lediga jobb socionom för du älskar att hjälpa människor. Oavsett vad du har för drömmar så kan ritualer hjälpa dig att uppnå dessa. Den enda som hindrar dig är egentligen du själv. Att utföra ritualerna under fullmåne eller nymåne kan vara extra kraftfullt och effektivt så om du har några drömmar som du verkligen vill uppnå är det bäst att passa på då. Vid full- eller nymåne är magin som högst och vi är som mest koppl ade till våra högre energier.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 315: Om man gör skillnad på mystik och religion och definierar mystik som utforskande och religion som trossatser – då kan New Age religion snarare betraktas som en typ av mystik där du kommer att möta fler guider än predikanter. Respekt är grundläggande inom New Age och du hittar inte samma strikta hierarkier som inom kristendom, judendom och Islam där de professionella uttolkarna (prästerna, och Imamerna till exempel) har en nyckelroll. De flesta inom New Age tror på uppl ysning och på att det finns individer som nått längre än andra längs vägen mot det tillståndet. Men vägen är öppen även för dig!
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 335: To Be Right She Ignores Your Boundaries She Enables Dependence She Oversimpl ifies
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 367: BioMed Central Psychiatry, receiving supportive texts twice a day helps peopl e
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 368: with depression cope a lot easier than peopl e who don’t receive those, “Hey,
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 371: a lot of different ways. If you’re trying to figure out whether a simpl e emoji or
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 383: Call on her. Compl etely passe. Bring a book or your fully-charged phone, or — if you want to go old-school — AirPods to shut her whining off.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 410: long, drawn-out expl anation of why you’re fuming to a short, simpl e, and
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 448: emoji means, but even with those expl ainers, we still can find ourselves lost in
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 457: hand-emoji-laden wing and expl ain it all.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 466: pl ans (even for a legitimate reason).
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 479: Peace Sign Emoji. Another weird turn of naming events, Appl e seems to want to call what is
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 481: for saying goodbye or goodnight to peopl e (I suppose it's akin to saying "peace"
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 491: Clapping Hands Emoji. Some peopl e like to call this guy the
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 492: "appl ause emoji," but I pretty much use it exclusively as a sarcastic golf clap.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 495: that someone's behavior is not deserving of real appl ause.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 501: emoji," but pl ease let's never say that again. The Fist Bump emoji is used the way
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 502: you think it should be used: to give someone props or impl y that he/she has done
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 505: Raised Hand Emoji is also pretty well known as the "pl z stop"
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 506: emoji. I pretty much only use it to tell peopl e to stop, but I'm sure there are
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 507: more patient peopl e out there who use it to mean "I have a question" or "high
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 519: celebrate Jehovah and Jesus the savior. Your friends finally come up with a pl an for the
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 526: You tap my back I tap yours. Manus manum lavat , provided we both have Appl e phones. Only appl e users can tap one another's backs like Range Rover owners who give one another the secret middle finger salute on the road. High end models provide a huge inflatable pinky to stick out up the sunroof.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 534: message that you want to repl y to. Once located, tap and hold the blue bubble
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 540: it. It’s so simpl e that this may be the first guide we’ve written with just one
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 542: peopl e aren’t aware of it. [Advertisement] If you repl y with a Tapback to someone
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 556: other websites. He writes about all things Appl e. Read Full Bio »
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 564: In case you're somehow 15 years behind, emoji are taking over the world. But although there is an obvious benefit to having such a large arsenal of emoji with which to freely share your life with the rest of the world, the choices you have can become overwhelming. For exampl e, what do all the cat emoji mean? Why do we need so many of them? What the heck am I supposed to use them all for? Well, if you're feeling overwhelmed, have no fear — I'm here to help you.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 567: All those differently colored emoji hearts allow us to express love in every color of the rainbow, and the Appl e emoji keyboard has 12 different options for trains, which is arguably a higher number than the actual amount of trains I've spotted in my entire life. We're clearly an emoji-driven society, and our pictorial vocabulary has expanded accordingly.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 569: But out of all the emojis available on the Appl e iPhone keyboard, one of the cutest and most versatile options is undoubtedly the cat emoji. It comes with a total of nine different expressions (perhaps representing each of a cat's hypothetical nine lives?), and they all, of course, mean different things. Not sure how to use all of them, or what makes them different? Check out this handy little guide to help you use them all properly, pl us two or three different exampl es of the emoji in action:
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 730: elämästään pl okia 7 Päivää -lehden nettisivuilla vuosina 2011–2015. Tukiainen on
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 796: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 832: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 841: juosta sellasta. Ezin epätoivoisesti E rappua ja oikeata ovea kompl exissa oli talo
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 869: yqsb2fhj8EF4H3nhzykLe84c6BwBceT1xiKB+OKpl wIFH2gHVmdcLCaENKtJ5yWJ
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 959: BOWXN9sWMupl ARLBuhDXeGHDOCeEzEIKEMnS1QBCTUd5S8/WNqpCjThav+X525kS
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 982: wanoWjanByhYT+CBYEnwcCoi4TGOZMMJtp9oo/QfwLkSFiTQapl KZSgvw/EhuEY7
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 32: Лолита play:none">Gastropodiaa
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 83: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/3c/Fran%C3%A7ois_Boucher_015.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 84: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/df/Ingre%2C_Grande_Odalisque.jpg/1280px-Ingre%2C_Grande_Odalisque.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 86: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b2/Jean-Auguste-Dominique_Ingres_-_Reclining_Venus_-_Walters_372392FXD.jpg/1024px-Jean-Auguste-Dominique_Ingres_-_Reclining_Venus_-_Walters_372392FXD.jpg" height="330px" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 92: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/3e/Ingres_Jupiter_et_Antiope.jpg" width="92%" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 93: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4b/Antoine_Watteau_-_Jupiter_and_Antiope_-_WGA25445.jpg/1280px-Antoine_Watteau_-_Jupiter_and_Antiope_-_WGA25445.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 94: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/26/Giuseppe_Cesari_detto_Cavalier_d%E2%80%99Arpino%2C_Giove_e_Antiope.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 130: “O caso, ampl amente expl orado na imprensa, dada a frequência com que tarados molestavam e sequestravam meninas em toda a América no final dos anos 40 (uma a cada 43 minutos, segundo o FBI), teve desfecho feliz: Sally logrou fugir e La Salle foi preso e condenado. Feliz em termos. Sally morreria num acidente de carro, aos 15 anos de idade”, conta Sérgio Augusto.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 138: “Nabokov talvez nem precisasse de Sally Horner para criar sua paradigmática ninfeta, pois já localizaram referências à sexualidade precoce de meninas pré-púberes em pelo menos seis de suas criações ficcionais, entre contos, novelas e romances.” Brian Boyd revela que Vladimir Nabokov fez ampl a pesquisa sobre a sexualidade de pessoas do sexo feminino “de 6 a 19 anos”. Não deixou nem mesmo de pesquisar as gírias dos jovens.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 166: Suellyn Lyon (July 10, 1946 – December 26, 2019) was an American actress. She joined the entertainment industry as a model at the age of 13, and later rose to prominence and won a Golden Globe for pl aying the title role in the film Lolita (1962). Her other film appearances included The Night of the Iguana (1964), 7 Women (1966), Tony Rome (1967), and Evel Knievel (1971).
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 183: ja R&B-sampl eja rumpuihin ja muihin instrumentteihin. Westin tyyli on vaihdellut
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 216: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/94/Caitlyn_Jenner.jpeg" height="200px"/>
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 217: ploads/2019/01/kim-kardashian-out-and-about-in-miami-01-05-2019-12.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 218: ploads/2018/10/11131818/Kanyev-West.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 285: Mitä vittua toikin ulina oli olevinaan? Kekä Nori? Aijoo se on Kunta Kinten esikoisTYTÄR Pacific Nordwest, jonka kunniaxi iskä väsäs tän laulun ISKÄSTÄ ja mamista. Mamivainaa kehuu siinä POIKAA (= iskää, laulun tekijää) kupl ixi ja lähettää siinä sivussa terviisiä luoteeseen, et kerro sille MUSTA (8x). Vitun narsistit. Kunta Kinten huonoin hetki oli kun sen mami Mae West teki enkelin eteiseen.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 298: One of the many striking and often shocking metaphors within “Yeezus,” the new album from rapper Kanye West, arrives halfway into the 10-song release, during a song called “I’m in It.” It involves a quote by the Rev. Martin Luther King Jr.: “Thank God almighty, free at last,” raps West, referencing a phrase from 50 years ago that the civil-rights leader used in relation to the pl ight of African Americans.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 304: Those who can’t stomach the polarizing Chicago artist and producer will have a repl enished arsenal at their disposal.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 307: Though only 40 minutes long, “Yeezus” weighs a ton, heavy with gravity and mouthiness, yowls, synthetic noise, deep beats and screams. A multi-dimensional contradiction, West tosses out rhyme-schemed similes that empl oy racial ideas rich with symbolism but often in service of harsh lyrics that suggests he either doesn’t appreciate or care about original intent.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 309: In addition to the repurposed King quote, West and producers TNGHT sampl e Nina Simone’s version of “Strange Fruit” without any apparent regard for it as a chronicle of Southern violence. Instead, he harnesses the devastating verses recounting the “strange fruit” hanging from a Southern tree — the dangling body of a lynching victim — in service of a song about gold-digging women, a night on the town taking MDMA and having sex.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 311: Elsewhere, the raised-fist call of the Black Panther Party, one of the most potent symbols of black power, is empl oyed as a cheap metaphor for sexual penetration.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 313: This is the work of a man unconcerned with offending women or racial historians, the voice of a soul in pure id mode, thinking with his groin and worrying little about the ladies’ vote. Is it the last gasp of a man who’s just become a father for the first time? An early midlife crisis? An attempt at alienating the marketpl ace so he can live as an artist rather than a paparazzi target?
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 370: pload/c_crop,h_5098,w_9063,x_0,y_0/q_auto:eco,f_auto,w_1920,h_1080,fl_lossy/39-842572611b4b0a316a4" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 407: pload/c_limit,cs_tinysrgb,dn_72,dpr_1.0,f_auto,fl_progressive.keep_iptc,w_400/waxqsvdeirnojvikf77g.jpg" height="300px"/>
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 428: From the start, critics compl ained about the ostensible sameness of Roth’s books, their narcissism and narrowness—or, as he himself put it, comparing his own work to his father’s conversation, “Family, family, family, Newark, Newark, Newark, Jew, Jew, Jew.” Over time, he took on vast themes—love, lust, loneliness, marriage, masculinity, ambition, community, solitude, loyalty, betrayal, patriotism, rebellion, piety, disgrace, the body, the imagination, American history, mortality, the relentless mistakes of life—and he did so in a variety of forms: comedy, parody, romance, conventional narrative, postmodernism, autofiction. In each performance of a self, Roth captured the same sound and consciousness. in nearly fifty years of reading him I’ve never been more bored. I got to know Roth in the nineteen-nineties, when I interviewed him for this magazine around the time he published “The Human Stain.” To be in his presence was an exhilarating, though hardly relaxing, experience. He was unnervingly present, a condor on a branch, unblinking, alive to everything: the best detail in your story, the slackest points in your argument. His intelligence was immense, his performances and imitations mildly funny. “He who is loved by his parents is a conquistador,” Roth used to say, and he was adored by his parents, though both could be daunting to the young Philip. Herman Roth sold insurance; Bess ruled the family’s modest house, on Summit Avenue, in a neighborhood of European Jewish immigrants, their children and grandchildren. There was little money, very few books. Roth was not an academic prodigy; his teachers sensed his street intelligence but they were not overawed by his classroom performance. Roth learned to write through imitation. His first published story, “The Day It Snowed,” was so thoroughly Truman Capote that, he later remarked, he made “Capote look like a longshoreman.”
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 436: crash, his grief was less than crippl ing. (The damaged, vengeful protagonist of
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 444: describes the case of a “successful Southern pl aywright” with an overbearing
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 448: obviously Kleinschmidt’s “pl aywright,” saw the article just after finishing the
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 449: novel. He spent multipl e sessions berating Kleinschmidt for this “psychoanalytic
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 485: With Walton's support, he began Call It Sleep in about 1930, compl eted the novel in the spring of 1934, and it was published in December 1934, to mostly good reviews. Yet the New York Herald Tribune's book critic Lewis Gannett foresaw that the book would not prove popular with its bleak depiction of New York's Lower East Side, but wrote readers would "remember it and talk about it and watch excitedly" for Roth's next book. Call It Sleep sold slowly and poorly, and after it was out-of-print, critics writing in magazines such as Commentary and Partisan Review kept praising it, and asking for it to be reprinted. After being republished in hardback in 1960 and paperback in 1964, with more than 1,000,000 copies sold, and many weeks on the New York Times bestseller list, the novel was hailed as an overlooked Depression-era masterpiece and classic novel of immigration. Today, it is widely regarded as a masterpiece of Jewish American literature. With Walton's support, he began Call It Sleep in about 1930, compl eted the novel in the spring of 1934, and it was published in December 1934, to mostly good reviews. Yet the New York Herald Tribune's book critic Lewis Gannett foresaw that the book would not prove popular with its bleak depiction of New York's Lower East Side, but wrote readers would "remember it and talk about it and watch excitedly" for Roth's next book. Call It Sleep sold slowly and poorly, and after it was out-of-print, critics writing in magazines such as Commentary and Partisan Review kept praising it, and asking for it to be reprinted.[ After being republished in hardback in 1960 and paperback in 1964, with more than 1,000,000 copies sold, and many weeks on the New York Times bestseller list, the novel was hailed as an overlooked Depression-era masterpiece and classic novel of immigration. Today, it is widely regarded as a masterpiece of Jewish American literature. After Muriel's death in 1990, Roth moved into a ramshackle former funeral parlor and occupied himself with revising the final volumes of his monumental work, Mercy of a Rude Stream. It has been alleged that the incestuous relationships between the protagonist, a sister, and a cousin in Mercy of a Rude Stream are based on Roth's life. Roth's own sister denied that such events occurred. Roth attributed his massive writer's block to personal problems such as depression, and to political conflicts, including his disillusion with Communism. At other times he cited his early break with Judaism and his obsessive sexual preoccupations as probable causes. Roth died in Albuquerque, New Mexico, United States in 1995. The character E. I. Lonoff in Philip Roth's Zuckerman novels (The Ghost Writer and Exit Ghost in this case), is a composite of Roth, Bernard Malamud and fictional elements.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 495: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 520: still have this majestic diversion." In another pl ace this
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 591: say, "If you must gamble your lives sexually, don't pl ay a lone
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 602: Matthew Henson ehti mutiaisena ekax pohjoisnavalle. Tai sille paikalle jota ne luuli pohjoisnavaxi. Kunnia siitä meni Pearylle. in 1912 he published a memoir titled A Negro Expl orer at the North Pole. Charles Drew keräsi sotaan veripankkeja, valkoista, mustaa ja punaista. Jäätyään auton alle se ei saanut verta valkoisesta sairaalasta vaan sai vuotaa kuiviin pihalla.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 657: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 662: pload/c_limit,cs_tinysrgb,dn_72,f_auto,fl_progressive.keep_iptc,w_1200/dnkwdsz7a1us5git01ta.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 704: Stick your tongue in a pl ug
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 755: At age 14, Love was arrested for shopl ifting from a Portland department store and remanded at Hillcrest Correctional Facility, a juvenile hall in Salem, Oregon.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 756: She was intermittently pl aced in foster care throughout late 1979 until becoming legally emancipated in 1980, after which she remained staunchly estranged from her mother.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 757: Shortly after her emancipation, Love spent two months in Japan working as a topl ess dancer, but was deported after her passport was confiscated. She returned to Portland and began working at the strip club Mary's Club, adopting the surname Love to conceal her identity; she later adopted Love as her surname. She worked odd jobs, including as a DJ at a gay disco. Love said she lacked social skills, and learned them while frequenting gay clubs and spending time with drag queens. During this period, she enrolled at Portland State University, studying English and philosophy.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 763: She appeared in supporting roles in the Alex Cox films Sid and Nancy (1986) and Straight to Hell (1987) before forming the band Hole in Los Angeles with guitarist Eric Erlandson. The group received critical acclaim from underground rock press for their 1991 debut album, produced by Kim Gordon, while their second release, Live Through This (1994), was met with critical accolades and multi-pl atinum sales. In 1995, Love returned to acting, earning a Golden Globe Award nomination for her performance as Althea Leasure in Miloš Forman's The Peopl e vs. Larry Flynt (1996), which established her as a mainstream actress. The following year, Hole's third album, Celebrity Skin (1998), was nominated for three Grammy Awards.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 771: She was the most gung-ho person I've ever met ... She gave 180%. I've worked with some peopl e that you've had to coax the performance out of them. With Courtney, there was no attitude." Said Don Fleming, who co-produced Hole's debut album with Kim Gordon.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 774: On July 23, 1989, Love married Leaving Trains vocalist James Moreland in Las Vegas; the marriage was annulled the same year. She later said that Moreland was a transvestite and that they had married "as a joke". After forming Hole, Love and Erlandson had a romantic relationship that lasted over a year. In Hole's formative stages, Love continued to work at strip clubs in Hollywood (including Jumbo's Clown Room and the Seventh Veil), saving money to purchase backline equipment and a touring van, while rehearsing at a Hollywood studio loaned to her by the Red Hot Chili Peppers. Hole pl ayed their first show in November 1989 at Raji's, a rock club in central Hollywood. Their debut single, "Retard Girl", was issued in April 1990 through the Long Beach indie label Sympathy for the Record Industry, and was pl ayed by Rodney Bingenheimer on local rock station KROQ. Hole appeared on the cover of Flipside, a Los Angeles-based punk fanzine. In early 1991, they eleased their second single, "Dicknail", through Sub Pop Records.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 779: Love's bandmate Eric Erlandson said that both he and Love were introduced to Cobain in a parking lot after a Butthole Surfers/L7 concert at the Hollywood Palladium on May 17, 1991. Sometime in late 1991, Love and Cobain became re-acquainted through Jennifer Finch, one of Love's longtime friends and former bandmates. Love and Cobain were a coupl e by 1992.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 780: On August 18, the coupl e's only child, a daughter, Frances Bean Cobain, was born in Los Angeles. The coupl e relocated to Carnation, Washington and then to Seattle.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 784: "Just marrying created a mythology around me that I didn't expect for myself, because I had a very controlled, five-year pl an about how I was going to be successful in the rock industry. Marrying Kurt, it all kind of went sideways in a way that I could not control and I became seen in a certain light–a vilified light that made Yoko Ono look like Pollyanna–and I couldn't stop it."
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 785: Love later said the article had serious impl ications for her marriage and Cobain's mental state, suggesting it was a factor in his suicide two years later.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 790: The success of the record combined with Cobain's suicide resulted in a high level of publicity for Love, and she was featured on Barbara Walters' 10 Most Fascinating Peopl e in 1995.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 793: In January 1995, Love was arrested in Melbourne for disrupting a Qantas flight after getting into an argument with a stewardess.[163] On July 4, 1995, at the Lollapalooza Festival in George, Washington, Love threw a lit cigarette at musician Kathleen Hanna before punching her in the face, alleging that Hanna had made a joke about her pl eaded guilty to an assault charge and was sentenced to anger management classed. In November 1995, two male teenagers sued Love for allegedly punching them during a Hole concert in Orlando, Florida in March 1995. The judge dismissed the case on grounds that the teens "weren't exposed to any greater amount of violence than could reasonably be expected at an alternative rock concert". Love later said she had little memory of 1994–1995, as she had been using large quantities of heroin and Rohypnol at the time. Mullakin on noista vuosista hämärähköt muistot, paizi että muutettiin Ilmattarentielle.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 795: After Hole's world tour concluded in 1996, Love made a return to acting, first in small roles in the Jean-Michel Basquiat biopic Basquiat and the drama Feeling Minnesota (1996), and then a starring role as Larry Flynt's wife Althea in Miloš Forman's critically acclaimed 1996 film The Peopl e vs. Larry Flynt. Love went through rehabilitation and quit using heroin at the insistence of Forman; she was ordered to take multipl e urine tests under the supervision of Columbia Pictures while filming, and passed all of them. Despite Columbia Pictures' initial reluctance to hire Love due to her troubled past, her performance received acclaim, earning a Golden Globe nomination for Best Actress, and a New York Film Critics Circle Award for Best Supporting Actress. Critic Roger Ebert called her work in the film "quite a performance; Love proves she is not a rock star pretending to act, but a true actress."
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 805: The following year, she returned to film opposite Lili Taylor in Julie Johnson (2001), in which she pl ayed a woman who has a lesbian relationship; Love won an Outstanding Actress award at L.A.'s Outfest. She was then cast in the thriller Trapped (2002), alongside Kevin Bacon and Charlize Theron. The film was a box-office flop.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 32: Miten reagoit naapureihisi? play:none">Urbaania
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 307: Chopra studied medicine in India before emigrating in 1970 to the United States, where he compl eted a residency in internal medicine and a fellowship in endocrinology. As a licensed physician, in 1980 he became chief of staff at the New England Memorial Hospital (NEMH). In 1985, he met Maharishi Mahesh Yogi and became involved in the Transcendental Meditation (TM) movement. Shortly thereafter he resigned his position at NEMH to establish the Maharishi Ayurveda Health Center. In 1993, Chopra gained a following after he was interviewed about his books on The Oprah Winfrey Show. He then left the TM movement to become the executive director of Sharp HealthCare's Center for Mind-Body Medicine. In 1996, he co-founded the Chopra Center for Wellbeing.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 311: The ideas Chopra promotes have regularly been criticized by medical and scientific professionals as pseudoscience. The criticism has been described as ranging "from the dismissive to...damning". Philosopher Robert Carroll writes that Chopra, to justify his teachings, attempts to integrate Ayurveda with quantum mechanics. Chopra says that what he calls "quantum healing" cures any manner of ailments, including cancer, through effects that he claims are literally based on the same principl es as quantum mechanics. This has led physicists to object to his use of the term "quantum" in reference to medical conditions and the human body. Evolutionary biologist Richard Dawkins has said that Chopra uses "quantum jargon as pl ausible-sounding hocus pocus". Chopra's treatments generally elicit nothing but a pl acebo response and have drawn criticism that the unwarranted claims made for them may raise "false hope" and lure sick peopl e away from legitimate medical treatments.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 470: Claude Sarraute, 93 ans, "n'entend pl us, ne voit pl us, ne foute pl us...
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 471: Claude Sarraute est donc la belle-mère du célèbre moine tibétain, interprète du dalaï-lama. Claude Sarraute "n'entend pl us, ne voit pl us, ne marche pl us" Les apparitions de Claude Sarraute sur nos antennes se font rares, puisque la journaliste est désormais âgée de 93 ans. Mais en 2019, elle refait surface , appelée par son ami Laurent Ruquier, en pl eine émission des Grosses têtes. "Mais dans ma grosse tête, ça va très bien", avait assuré Claude Sarraute, non sans humour et pétulance.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 478: La journaliste avait pourtant confié au magazine VSD qu'elle pensait parfois au suicide... A présent, elle est aidée par pl usieurs assistantes de vie au quotidien. Peut-être que son beau-fils avec son Mind and Life Institute pourrait l'assister. Getting rid of the painful life that is only slowing down the racing mind in her large mostly vacant head.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 481: The Mind & Life Institute is a US-registered, not-for-profit 501(c)(3) organization founded in 1991 to establish the field of contempl ative sciences. Based in Charlottesville, Va., the institute “brings science and contempl ative wisdom together to better understand the mind and create positive change in the world." Over three decades, Mind & Life has pl ayed a key role in the mindfulness meditation movement by funding research projects and think tanks, and by convening conferences and dialogues with the Dalai Lama. Since 2020, Mind & Life's grant-making events and digital programs have sought to nurture personal wellbeing, build more compassionate communities, and strengthen the human-earth connection. And fatten the monks' bank accounts. 1 to lama, 2 to me.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 539: Someone very insecure about who they are that they must at all times appear to be 'edgy' with shock value in order to stay relevant. This often means someone who thinks excessive violence and guns are cool, pl ays way too much GTA and goes out of their way to be an annoying hipster douchebag, often excusing their pretty disgusting selfish behaviour and toxic conceited attitudes by quoting "Beyond Good and Evil" by Neitzsche. They will also find other Edgelords to create cliques with in order to maintain their comfortable Groupthink dynamics and will malign those who do not share their miserable hipster world view.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 540: The videogame character Shadow The Hedgehog is the best exampl e of the redundant Edgelord mentality.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 543: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/4/41/ShadowTheHedgehogSA2.png" width="20%" />
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 784: Eniten vituttaa se kun on "ihmisiä likkeellä". Messuilla, markkinoilla, juhlissa. PAINUKAA VITTUUN! Peopl e in motion... Be sure to have some flowers on your hair. P&A vittuuntuvat etenkin läskimoosexista. Niillä täytyy olla anorexia tai jotain. Ja ne on kexineet aika paljon ad hominem nimityxiä, mm.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 852: Njaa, kyllä oma hieroja, terapeutti ja peetee pl us komee könsikäs uima-altaassa vois siinä jelppiä. Sais latinkia päähän jos toiseenkin.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 32: Pigita play:none">Manspl ainingia
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 51: Joyce Kilmer Memorial Forest is an approximately 3,800-acre tract of publicly owned virgin forest in Graham County, North Carolina, named in memory of poet Joyce Kilmer (1886–1918), best known for his poem "Trees". Kilmer is most remembered for "Trees", which has been the subject of frequent parodies and references in popular culture. Kilmer's work is often disparaged by critics and dismissed by scholars as being too simpl e and overly sentimental, and that his style was far too traditional and even archaic.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 57: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 58: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 60: However, Kilmer's eldest son, Kenton, declares that the poem does not appl y to any one tree—that it could appl y equally to any. "Trees" was written in an upstairs bedroom at the family's home in Mahwah, New Jersey, that "looked out down a hill, on our well-wooded lawn". Kenton Kilmer stated that while his father was "widely known for his affection for trees, his affection was certainly not sentimental—the most distinguished feature of Kilmer's property was a colossal woodpile outside his home". The house stood in the middle of a forest and what lawn it possessed was obtained only after Kilmer had spent months of weekend toil in chopping down trees, pulling up stumps, and spl itting logs. Kilmer's neighbors had difficulty in believing that a man who could do that could also be a poet.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 64: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5e/Kilmer_Home_Mahwah_New_Jersey.jpg/800px-Kilmer_Home_Mahwah_New_Jersey.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 72:
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 75:
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 114: Only now, 40 years after his death, are some critics daring to suggest that many of his 18 novels are mediocre at best and that his masterpiece, “Lolita,” is a gruesome celebration of pedophile rape. Moreover the cherubic writer known to us from famous Life magazine photo shoots, jauntily brandishing his butterfly net in the Tetons or the Alps, proves to be a nasty piece of work. Distasteful peopl e can do wonderful work — Pablo Picasso was no walk in the park — but their art doesn’t excuse their obnoxious behavior.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 116: There are currently five scholarly journals devoted to Nabokov studies. His allusive style and trilingual (English, French, Russian) wordpl ay are catnip for academics, who endlessly parse challenging texts like “Pale Fire” — a novel in verse, followed by obscurantist commentary — finding new apercus tailor-made for small-journal publication. Nabokov’s apotheosis in academe is quite ironical, because he and his close friend, the literary critic Edmund Wilson, shared an icy disdain for the ivory tower. They viewed universities as ATMs, handy because there were so many of them, and because they were flush with cash. Nabokov, who arrived in the United States penniless in 1940, had to rely on teaching assignments at Wellesley and Cornell to feed his family for 15 years. The moment “Lolita” made him financially independent, he fled Cornell for Switzerland and never set foot in a classroom again.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 126: Rebecca Solnit, for instance, wrote a cringe-inducing and hilarious essay, “Men Expl ain Lolita to Me,” including these lines: “A nice liberal man came along and expl ained to me this book was actually an allegory as though I hadn’t thought of that yet. It is, and it’s also a novel about a big old guy violating a spindly child over and over and over. Then she weeps.”
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 135: Having won the much-coveted Nobel, and now suppl anting “Lolita” on the American best-seller lists, “Zhivago” drove Nabokov bonkers.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 140: This chapter gives a brief history of the émigré travelogue in and about America from Alexis de Tocqueville to Simone de Beauvoir, by way of introducing the four authors studied in this book: Vladimir Nabokov, Robert Frank, Alfred Hitchcock and Wim Wenders. Elsa Court argues that the outsider’s perspective has shaped representations of modern America through restless mobility, drawing a portrait of the modern highway shaped by the needs and cravings of the motorist. In the context of mobilities studies’ recent embrace of the humanities, Court makes an important case for the re-examination of the fixed pl aces designed to facilitate motion—motel, gasoline station, roadside restaurant, as well as signage and memorials—and the roadside’s redesignation from so-called non-pl ace to modern American topos.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 148:
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 164: pload/w_1200,h_800,ar_1.5002042,dpr_1,c_fill,g_faces/q_auto:eco,f_auto,fl_lossy/13-3-11386662" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 254: The mention (p.289 TAL) of the case abduction and rape of the 11 years old Florence Sally Horner by a 50 years old man. In 1948, the 11-year-old Horner stole a 5-cent notebook from a store in Camden, New Jersey. Frank La Salle, a 50-year-old mechanic, caught her stealing, told her that he was an FBI agent, and threatened to send her to « a pl ace for girls like you« . Then he abducted the girl and spent 21 months traveling with her over different American states and raping her. Florence Horner died in a car accident (p.288 TAL, « a routine highway accident«) near Woodbine, New Jersey, in 1952. It seems clear that the case inspired partly « Lolita » (even though this theme existed long before in Nabokov’s works (see for instance his 1939 work « Volshebnik » (i.e. « The Enchanter« ))).
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 269: ploads/2016/02/HEMEDIA_MERMAID_28.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 274: ploads/sites/5/2019/02/181009_Nymphe_Anif_bear_72dpi_farbe-850x1213.png" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 275: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dd/JuliusHubner_Melusine.jpg/400px-JuliusHubner_Melusine.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 282: The most famous literary version of Melusine tales, that of Jean d'Arras, compiled about 1382–1394, was worked into a collection of "spinning yarns" as told by ladies at their spinning coudrette (coulrette (in French)). He wrote The Romans of Partenay or of Lusignen: Otherwise known as the Tale of Melusine, giving source and historical notes, dates and background of the story. Another version, Chronique de la princesse (Chronicle of the Princess). tells how in the time of the Crusades, Elynas, the King of Albany (an old name for Scotland or Alba), went hunting one day and came across a beautiful lady in the forest. She was Pressyne, mother of Melusine. He persuaded her to marry him but she agreed, only on the promise—for there is often a hard and fatal condition attached to any pairing of fay and mortal—that he must not enter her chamber when she birthed or bathed her children. She gave birth to tripl ets. When he violated this taboo, Pressyne left the kingdom, together with her three daughters, and traveled to the lost Isle of Avalon.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 297: Stratton-Porter wrote several best-selling novels in addition to columns for national magazines, such as McCall's and Good Housekeeping, among others. Her novels have been translated into more than twenty languages, including Braille, and at their peak in the 1910s attracted an estimated 50 million readers. Eight of her novels, including A Girl of the Limberlost, were adapted into moving pictures. Stratton-Porter was also the subject of a one-woman pl ay, A Song of the Wilderness. Two of her former homes in Indiana are state historic sites, the Limberlost State Historical Site in Geneva and the Gene Stratton-Porter State Historic Site on Sylvan Lake, near Rome City, Indiana.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 361: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5e/1938_poster_Romance_of_the_Limberlost.jpg/440px-1938_poster_Romance_of_the_Limberlost.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 436: L’œuvre littéraire de Prosper Mérimée relève d'« une esthétique du peu », son écriture se caractérisant par la rapidité et l'absence de développements, qui créent une narration efficace et un réalisme fonctionnel adaptés au genre de la nouvelle. Mais ce style a parfois disqualifié les œuvres de Mérimée, auxquelles on a reproché leur manque de relief — « Le paysage était pl at comme Mérimée », écrit Victor Hugo.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 453: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 462: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Garrote_Execution_-_1901.png/1024px-Garrote_Execution_-_1901.png" />
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 482: Der menschliche Makel oli jutkuxi naamioitunut mutiainen. Pili ize oli länkkärixi naamioitu jutiainen. Oikeasti ne oli 2 rasistista setämiestä. Tää kirja on tyypillistä Rothin makulatuuria. Maailmanluokan manspl ainingia.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 484: In 1996, two years before the main action of the novel, Silk is accused of racism by two African-American students over his use of the word spooks, using the term as he wonders aloud over their having missed all his classes for the first five weeks of the semester ("Does anyone know these peopl e? Do they exist or are they spooks?" - he has never seen these students, and has no idea they are African-American) rather than in the racially derogatory sense. The uproar leads to Silk's resignation. Soon after, his wife Iris dies of a stroke, which Silk feels is caused by the stress of his being forced out of the college.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 492: In the summer of 1998, 71-year-old Silk approaches Zuckerman, hoping that the writer will lend his talents to his case against the college. Zuckerman is uninterested, but the two begin a brief friendship and Silk tells him his life story, beginning with his adolescence in Essex County, New Jersey. Zuckerman reveals to the reader that Silk is secretly a light-skinned African-American who has been "passing" as a Jew since a stint in the Navy during World War II. Silk compl etes graduate school at New York University, marries a Jewish woman (Iris) and has four children, none of whom are aware of their father's real ancestry.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 496: 4. Why do Silk’s colleagues fail to defend him? Why would highly educated academics—peopl e trained to weigh evidence carefully and to be aware of the compl ex subtleties of any object of study—so readily believe the absurd stories concocted to disgrace Coleman Silk? Why does Ernestine describe Athena College as “a hotbed of ignorance”?
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 500: 9. Late in the novel, Nathan discovers that Faunia had kept a diary and that “the illiteracy had been an act, something she decided her situation demanded” [p. 297]. Why did Faunia feign illiteracy? Was there any reason why she chose this flaw in lieu of others? What are the impl ications of her secret?
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 508: 16. The Human Stain is a novel of sweeping ambition that tells the stories not just of individual lives but of the moral ethos of America at the end of the twentieth century. How would that ethos be described? What does the novel reveal about the compl exity of issues such as race, sex, identity, and privacy?
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 510: Että ne ei ole lainkaan kompl exeja vaan sitä samaa simppeliä EAT! FUCK! KILL! tematiikkaa. Että Amerikan eetos ei ole muuta kuin iänikuista American Dreamia. Myy vaikka isoäitisi kuha tulet kuuluisaxi miljonäärixi.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 524: On it being revealed that Nerissa and the clerk were one and the same, he is much relieved to discover that he has not in fact been cuckolded, and closes the pl ay on a bawdy pun. Nerissa's ring is the sphincter between her legs.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 542: Kubla Khan Kupl a kurkussa
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 547: In Xanadu did Kubla Khan Xanaduun kuvun Kupl a Khaan
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 548: A stately pl easure-dome decree: rakensi oman Shangri Laan:
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 561: A savage pl ace! as holy and enchanted Villi mesta! Pyhempi ja enempi lumottu,
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 576: And ’mid this tumult Kubla heard from far Ja keskellä kovaa meuhkaa Kupl a tota
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 578: The shadow of the dome of pl easure Herkkuperseen varjo näyttäytyi
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 583: A sunny pl easure-dome with caves of ice! Aurinkoinen kupoli, paikka tuttu!
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 588: And on her dulcimer she pl ayed, ja sen soitin oli eräänlainen harppu,
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 618: A person from Porlock was an unwelcome visitor to Samuel Taylor Coleridge during his composition of the poem Kubla Khan in 1797. Coleridge claimed to have perceived the entire course of the poem in an opiatic dream, but was interrupted by this visitor from Porlock while in the process of writing it. Kubla Khan, only 54 lines long, was never compl eted. Thus "person from Porlock", "man from Porlock", or just "Porlock" are literary allusions to unwanted intruders who disrupt inspired creativity.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 620: In 1797, Coleridge was living at Nether Stowey, a village in the foothills of the Quantocks. However, due to ill health, he had "retired to a lonely farm house between Porlock and Lynton, on the Exmoor confines of Somerset and Devonshire". It is unclear whether the interruption took pl ace at Culbone Parsonage (Culbone, penisluu, hehe) or at Ash Farm. (Ass farm, puofarmi, hehe.) Jossain sillä välillä takuulla. He described the incident in his first publication of the poem, writing about himself in the third person:
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 624: If there were an actual person from Porlock, it could have been one of many peopl e, including William Wordsworth, Joseph Cottle, or John Thelwall.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 641: Just to mention one item: the in folio de-luxe Bagration Island by the expl orer and psychoanalyst Melanie Weiss, a remarkable lady, a remarkable work - drop that gun - with photographs of eight hundred and something male organs she examined and measured in 1932 on Bagration, in the Barda Sea, very illuminating graphs, pl otted with love under pl easant skies - drop that gun - and moreover I can ...
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 649: ploads/Georgia-Tarrant-MD-300x300.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 677: We work with sex professionals in the health area of Mexico, Central America, and other English-speaking countries to develop topics of enormous public interest such as hypertension, diabetes mellitus, tinnitus, nutrition, oral impl ants, anal impl ants, genital transpl ants, irrational use of medications, or hygienic tissues such as biotechnology, medical ethics, the teaching of Medicine, Alternative Medicines, etc.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 680: In almost 20 years of uninteresting work, we have published hundreds of articles and brought quantity medical information to tens of millions of suckers peopl e worldwide, in the hopes that quantity will turn into quality, as Marx predicted.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 695: "Nabakovin" Lolita on lusittu. Olipa paska. Ei tunnu yhtään uskottavalta et Huupertti olis tykännyt Lolitasta vanhempana. Ei se sitä ihmisenä kiinnostanut paskan vertaa koko aikana. Pelkkää setämies vittuilua alusta loppuun. Kohta sen liha olis alkanut liikkua uusissa "nymfeteissä". Spotted Dick ei pääse täpl istään. Kysy vaikka Melanie Kleinilta, jolla on niistä 800 kuvan albumi.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 700: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 709: Endymion tarkottanee puolisukeltajaa. Kuuhullu astronomi tai sit paimen vaan. Astronomi mainitaan merenneitopätkässsä. Octopussy's garden in the waves. The 4th century Babylonian god of the sea was known as Oannes who was portrayed as a man with a fish tail in pl ace of legs. Oannes would appear out of the ocean every day as a fish-human creature to share his wisdom with the peopl e along the Persian Gulf, then return to the sea at night. There was also Atargatis, a Syrian moon and sea goddess, her story tells us that after causing the death of her mortal lover she fled to the sea and took the form of a woman above the waist and a fish below, for this reason she became known as a mermaid goddess. During medieval times mermaids were considered as matter-of-factly alongside other aquatic animals, such as whales and dolphins. The goddess Venus is sometimes depicted as a mermaid, being born from a giant clam shell.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 713: Chatterton soon conceived the romance of Thomas Rowley, an imaginary monk of the 15th century, and adopted for himself the pseudonym Thomas Rowley for poetry and history. According to psychoanalyst Louise J. Kapl an, his being fatherless pl ayed a great role in his imposturous creation of Rowley. The development of his masculine identity was held back by the fact that he was raised by two women: his mother Sarah and his sister Mary.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 715: Thomas Rowley (1721–1796) was a famous poet of Vermont, known both as the spokesman for Ethan Allen and dubbed “The Bard of the Green Mountains.” During his lifetime and before the American Revolution, his poetry gained the reputation with the catchphrase of "Setting the Balls on Fire." Rowley's poetry actually focused not only on politics, but also on the pl easantness and rustic nature of pioneer life, with humor and witty observations. For exampl e, in another poetic inventory of his "estate", he sums up that he has virtually nothing, but still he was independent and happy.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 717: The poem begins with the line "A thing of beauty is a joy for ever". Endymion is written in rhyming coupl ets in iambic pentameter (also known as heroic coupl ets). Keats based the poem on the Greek myth of Endymion, the shepherd beloved of the moon goddess Selene. The poem elaborates on the original story and renames Selene "Cynthia" (an alternative name for Artemis). It starts by painting the typical rustic scene of trees, rivers, shepherds, and sheep. The shepherds gather around an altar and pray to Pan, god of shepherd pies and cocks. As the youths sing and dance, the elder men sit by the rivers of Babylon and bleat about what life would be like in the shades of Elysium.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 719: However, Endymion, the "brain-sick shepherd-prince" of Mt. Latmos, is in a trancelike state, and not participating in their discourse. His sister, Peona (Fanny), takes him away and brings him to her resting pl ace where he sleeps. After he wakes, he tells Peona of his encounter with Cynthia (Fanny B.), and how much he loved her. The poem is divided into four books, each approximately 1,000 lines long. TLDR, quips Peona.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 728: %This poem is quoted by Monsieur Verdoux in Charlie Chapl in's homo film, before committing a loony murder. "Our feet were soft in flowers...". Hänen viimeisiksi sanoikseen jäävät: ”En olekaan koskaan maistanut rommia!”, kun vankilanjohtaja tarjoaa hänelle viimeistä lasillista ennen giljotiiniin vientiä. Loppukuvaksi jää mielikuva kyynisestä ja mitään katumattomasta miehestä, joka menee kuolemaan koska kaikkien on kuoltava joskus. Se että kuolema tulee mestaamalla ja tuomiona murhista, näyttää olevan hänelle aivan samantekevää.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 729: Tämän mustan komedian kolkko illuusiottomuus tyrmistytti aikalaiset, mutta nykyään teosta pidetään Chapl inin merkkityönä. On esitetty ajatuksia, että hän nimenomaan tällaisella aiheella esitti vastalauseita sen johdosta, että hänet oli aiheetta leimattu kommunistiksi.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 732: line ("A thing of beauty is a joy for ever") is quoted by Mary Poppins in the 1964 Disney movie, while she pulls out a potted pl ant from her bag. It is also referenced by Willy Wanka in the film Willy Wanka & the Chocolate Factory upon introducing the Wankamobile. ple_claimed_to_be_immortal_in_myth_and_legend">https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/List_of_peopl e_claimed_to_be_immortal_in_myth_and_legend
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 739: Shall I give you Miss Brawn? She is about my height—with a fine style of countenance of the lengthen'd sort—she wants sentiment in every feature—she manages to make her hair look well—her nostrills are fine—though a little painful—her mouth is bad and good—her Profil is better than her full-face which indeed is not full but pale and thin without showing any bone—Her shape is very graceful and so are her movements—her Arms are good her hands badish—her feet tolerable—she is not seventeen—but she is ignorant—monstrous in her behaviour flying out in all directions, calling peopl e such names—that I was forced lately to make use of the term Minx—this is I think not from any innate vice but from a penchant she has for acting stylishly. I am however tired of such style and shall decline any more of it".
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 753: Have ye tippl ed drink more fine Ootteko kallistaneet juomaa fiiniä
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 769: And pl edging with contented smack E voinut sitä yhtään liikaa kehua.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 867: Not in lone spl endour hung aloft the night En yxin loistossani roikkumassa yötaivaalla
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 869: Like Nature's patient, sleepl ess Eremite, Kuin huonosta unesta kärsivä luonnon kulkuri,
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 890: To bend with appl es the moss'd cottage-trees, Taivuttaa ompuilla sammaloituneita mökkipuita
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 892: To swell the gourd, and pl ump the hazel shells Paisuttaa kurpizat ja hasselpähkinät sun muita
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 913: And touch the stubble-pl ains with rosy hue; Ja koskee pellon pinkin pistelevää ihosänkeä,
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 29: Kootut töräyxet play:none">FUCK!
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 32: player.vimeo.com/video/595400239" />
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 112: Andreas Capellanus , appelé en français par une traduction de son nom André le Chapelain, a écrit au XIIe siècle un traité intitulé ordinairement De Amore, et souvent traduit, de façon quelque peu fautive, Traité de l'Amour courtois, bien que son ton réaliste, voire cynique indique que, dans une certaine mesure, il se veut un antidote à l'amour courtois. On ne sait rien de la vie d'André le Chapelain, mais on suppose qu'il faisait partie de la cour de Marie de France, et qu'il était probablement d'origine française. On a soutenu que De Amore codifie la vie sociale et sexuelle de la cour d'Aliénor à Poitiers, entre 1170 et 1174, mais il a été manifestement écrit au moins dix ans pl us tard et, semble-t-il, à Troyes. Il traite de pl usieurs thèmes spécifiques qui faisaient l'objet d'un débat poétique entre troubadours et trobairitz à la fin du XIIe siècle.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 116: Jakob Bosshart (* 7. August 1862 im Weiler Stürzikon, Gemeinde Oberembrach, Kanton Zürich; † 18. Februar 1924 in Clavadel, Gemeinde Davos) war ein Schweizer Lehrer und Schriftsteller. Jakob Bosshart war, wie er schrieb, der Sohn «gepl agter, aber aufstrebender Bauersleute». Er wuchs auf einem einsamen Hof zwischen dem Töss- und dem Glattal im Zürcher Unterland auf. Nach dem Besuch der Sekundarschule absolvierte er von 1882 bis 1885 das Lehrerbildungsseminar in Küsnacht und wurde für kurze Zeit Lehrer in Deutschland. 1915 musste er aufgrund einer fortgeschrittenen Tuberkulose in ein Sanatorium im Hochtal von Clavadel bei Davos überführt werden, wo er 1924 starb.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 123: Jacques Chardonne , nom de pl ume de Jacques Boutelleau, né à Barbezieux le 2 janvier 1884 et mort à La Frette-sur-Seine le 29 mai 1968, était un écrivain français. Aîné charentais de l'écrivain Pierre-Henri Simon, il fait partie du Groupe de Barbezieux avec Geneviève Fauconnier, Henri Fauconnier, Maurice Delamain, Jacques Delamain, Germaine Boutelleau, sans que ce groupe « géographique » partage les mêmes vues. Collaborationniste pendant la guerre, considéré comme un auteur d'extrême droite, il est avec Paul Morand un des pères spirituels de ceux qu'on a appelés « Les Hussards », les écrivains Roger Nimier, Jacques Laurent, Antoine Blondin et Michel Déon.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 125: Benjamin Disraeli , 1st Earl of Beaconsfield KG PC FRS (21 December 1804 – 19 April 1881) was a British statesman and Conservative politician who twice served as Prime Minister of the United Kingdom. He pl ayed a central role in the creation of the modern Conservative Party, defining its policies and its broad outreach. Disraeli is remembered for his influential voice in world affairs, his political battles with the Liberal Party leader William Ewart Gladstone, and his one-nation conservatism or "Tory democracy". He made the Conservatives the party most identified with the glory and power of the British Empire. He is the only British prime minister to have been of Jewish birth. He was also a novelist, publishing works of fiction even as prime minister.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 128: He maintained a close friendship with Queen Victoria, who in 1876 elevated him to Earl of Beaconsfield. Disraeli´s second term was dominated by the Eastern Question—the slow decay of the Ottoman Empire and the desire of other European powers, such as Russia, to gain at its expense. Disraeli arranged for the British to purchase a major interest in the Suez Canal Company in Egypt. In 1878, faced with Russian victories against the Ottomans, he worked at the Congress of Berlin to obtain peace in the Balkans at terms favourable to Britain and unfavourable to Russia, its longstanding enemy. This dipl omatic victory over Russia established Disraeli as one of Europe´s leading statesmen.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 130: World events thereafter moved against the Conservatives. Controversial wars in Afghanistan and South Africa undermined his public support. He angered British farmers by refusing to reinstitute the Corn Laws in response to poor harvests and cheap imported grain. With Gladstone conducting a massive speaking campaign, his Liberals defeated Disraeli´s Conservatives at the 1880 general election. In his final months, Disraeli led the Conservatives in Opposition. He had written novels throughout his career, beginning in 1826, and he published his last compl eted novel, Endymion, shortly before he died at the age of 76. Russell pelkäsi pienenä Gladstonen setää.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 133: Fils d’un riche chapelier de Dinan, Duclos était destiné à reprendre les affaires de son père mais c’était un enfant doué d’une vive intelligence et d’une grande mémoire et sa mère, devenue veuve, décida de l’envoyer achever ses études à Paris. Il suivit d’abord les cours de l’académie que tenait, rue de Charonne, l’abbé de Dangeau, puis du collège d'Harcourt où il entreprit l’étude du droit en vue de devenir avocat. Mais il se laissa aller à la dissipation, s’appl iquant surtout à l’étude des armes, avant de décider de se consacrer aux lettres. Il fréquenta le café Procope et le café Gradot, où l’on ne tarda pas à le remarquer pour l’agrément et le piquant de sa conversation.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 135: C’était, dit Jean-Jacques Rousseau, « un homme droit et adroit ». « Il faisait profession, écrit La Harpe, d’une franchise brusque qui ne dépl aisait point […] Soit habitude, soit dessein, il gardait ce ton même dans la louange et l’on peut juger qu’elle n’y perdait pas. Il avait d’ailleurs un fonds de droiture qui le rendait incapable de pl ier son opinion ni sa liberté à aucun intérêt ni aucune politique ; et cependant ce ne fut point un obstacle à son avancement, parce qu’il n’offensa jamais l’amour-propre des gens de lettres, et qu’il sut intéresser en sa faveur celui des gens en pl ace. » Duclos avait beaucoup d’esprit et une grande liberté de parole ; on cite de lui nombre de mots heureux.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 142: John Fletcher (1579–1625) was a Jacobean pl aywright. Following William Shakespeare as house pl aywright for the King's Men, he was among the most prolific and influential dramatists of his day; during his lifetime and in the early Restoration, his fame rivalled Shakespeare's. He collaborated on writing pl ays with Francis Beaumont, and also with Shakespeare on two pl ays.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 153: Walter "Savage" Landor (1775–1864) oli englantilainen kirjailija. Hän oli niin kiivasluontoinen että hänet erotettiin sekä Rugbyn koulusta että myöhemmin Oxfordin yliopistosta. Hän siirtyi Lontooseen, missä hän julkaisi englannin ja latinan kielellä ensimmäiset runoelmansa. Landorin ensimmäinen laajahko runoteos oli Gebir (1798). Tässä, kuten Landorin myöhemmissäkin runoissa, huomaa järvikoulun ja varsinkin Byronin ällöömän Robert Southeyn vaikutusta. Landorin draamat Count Julian (1811), Andrea of Hungary ja Giovanni of Napl es (1839) eivät menestyneet näyttämöllä, ne olivatkin aivan paskoja. Landor eli ahtaissa taloudellisissa oloissa enimmäkseen Walesissa vuoteen 1805, jolloin hän isänsä kuoltua peri kokonaisen omaisuuden. Hän lähti 1808 Espanjaan taistelemaan ranskalaisia vastaan, värväsi omilla varoillaan soturijoukon ja joutui siksi taas taloudelliseen ahdinkoon. Hän siirtyi 1815 Italiaan, missä hän asui 20 vuotta, loppuiällään taloudellisten huolien rasittamana, joihin hän ilman Robert Browningin apua olisi sortunut. Samoin kuin lordi Byron ja Leigh Hunt, myös Landor oli intohimoinen vapauden (= britti-imperialismin) rakastaja, ja vapauden asialle hän oli valmis uhraamaan omaisuutensa. Landorin pääteos on Imaginary conversations of imaginary literary men and statesmen, jonka kaksi edellistä osaa ilmestyivät 1824 ja kolme jälkimmäistä 1829. Teos on täynnä tekosyvällisiä ajatuksia esitettynä kauniilla, dramaattisesti voimakkaalla, joskaan ei aina helposti tajuttavalla proosatyylillä. Eeva Kilpi on suomentanut osittain runon "On his seventy-fifth birthday" julkaisuun Tätä runoa en unohda. Pertti Niemisen suomentama runo "En käynyt kiistaan, hillizin izeni" on julkaistu kokoelmassa Kuu kultainen terälehti.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 159: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f7/RichterJP.jpg" style="width:10%;float:right" />
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 182: Madame de Staël (/stal/) ou bien Anne-Louise-Germaine Necker, baronne de Staël-Holstein, était une romancière, épistolière et philosophe genevoise et française née le 22 avril 1766 à Paris où elle est morte le 14 juillet 1817. Issue d´une famille de protestants valdo-genevois richissimes, fille du ministre des finances de Louis XVI Jacques Necker, elle est élevée dans un milieu de gens de lettres. Elle épouse, en 1786, le baron Erik Magnus Staël von Holstein, ambassadeur du roi Gustave III de Suède auprès de la cour de France à Versailles. Le coupl e se séparera en 1800. Devenue baronne de Staël, elle mène une vie sentimentale agitée et entretient en particulier une relation orageuse avec Benjamin Constant, écrivain et homme politique franco-vaudois rencontré en 1794. Entretemps, sa réputation littéraire et intellectuelle s´est affirmée grâce à trois essais philosophiques que sont les Lettres sur les ouvrages et le caractère de Jean-Jacques Rousseau (1788), De l´influence des passions sur le bonheur de l´individu et des nations (1796) et De la littérature considérée dans ses rapports avec les institutions sociales (1800). Favorable à la Révolution française et aux idéaux de 1789 au debut, elle adopte une position critique dès 1791 et ses idées d´une monarchie constitutionnelle la font considérer comme une opposante gênante par les maîtres de la révolution. Malgré le statut de dipl omate de son mari, elle doit se réfugier auprès de son père en Suisse à pl usieurs reprises. Interdite de séjour sur le sol français par Napoléon Bonaparte qui la considère comme un obstacle à sa politique, elle s´installe en Suisse dans le château familial de Coppet qui sert de lieu principal de rencontres au groupe du même nom, et d´où elle fait paraître Delphine (1802), Corinne ou l´Italie (1807) et De l´Allemagne (1810/1813b). Ses œuvres fictionnelles majeures, dans lesquelles elle représente des femmes victimes des contraintes sociales qui les enchaînent, sont Delphine (1802) et Corinne ou l´Italie (1807).
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 188: ploads/2019/10/d1232-706x1024.jpg" style="width:10%;float:right" />
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 192: Während ihre Brüder höhere Schulen besuchten (Ludwig Robert war Schüler des Französischen Gymnasiums) und eine kaufmännische Ausbildung absolvierten, wurde Rahel von Hauslehrern unterrichtet. Sie lernte Französisch, Englisch und Italienisch, erhielt Klavier- und Tanzunterricht und unternahm früh Reisen nach Breslau (1794), Tepl itz (1796) und Paris (1800). Ihre Allgemeinbildung übertraf bei weitem die einer durchschnittlichen christlichen Mädchenerziehung. Im böhmischen Kurbad Karlsbad begegnete sie 1795 erstmals Goethe, den sie als Schriftsteller außerordentlich verehrte, und der von ihr urteilte, sie sei „ein Mädchen von außerordentlichem Verstand“, „stark in jeder ihrer Empfindungen und dabei leicht in ihren Äußerungen“, „kurz, was ich eine schöne Seele nennen möchte“.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 204: Neben anderen Liebeleien erlebte Rahel Robert, die sehr kritisch über die bürgerliche Ehe zwischen Mann und Frau dachte, auch das Scheitern ihres Verlöbnisses mit dem spanischen Gesandten Rafael Eugenio Rufino d’Urquijo Ybaizal y Taborga (1769–1839), der sie mit Streitszenen quälte. Was d’Urquijo betrifft, den sie als unbeherrscht und eifersüchtig erlebt hatte, trug sie ihm nichts nach: „Er hat mich zu sehr, zu oft, und immerweg beleidigt; gut bin ich ihm auch“, schrieb sie an Karl August Varnhagen, mit dem sie inzwischen seit fünf Jahren verlobt war. Am 15. Juli 1814 heiratete d’Urquijo in Berlin Louise von Fuchs (1792–1862); neun Wochen später, am 27. September, heiratete Rahel Robert, ebenfalls wieder in Berlin, den vierzehn Jahre jüngeren Dipl omaten, Historiker und Publizisten Varnhagen, der in Österreich den Namenszusatz seiner adligen Vorfahren „von Ense“ angenommen hatte. Das geschah zu einer Zeit, als er noch Gefahr lief, als gebürtiger Düsseldorfer von Napoleons Truppen rekrutiert zu werden. Später wurde der Adelstitel, den beide Ehepartner trugen, durch ein Patent des preußischen Königs Friedrich Wilhelm III. bestätigt. Kurz zuvor, am 23. September, war Rahel zum evangelischen Christentum konvertiert. Bei der Hochzeit war der gemeinsame Freund Friedrich de la Motte Fouqué zugegen.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 206: Als sie am 8. September 1815 Goethes Besuch empfing: „Ich benahm mich sehr schlecht. Ich ließ Goethe beinah nicht sprechen!“ 1827 zogen die Varnhagens in die Beletage der Mauerstraße Nr. 36, die ihnen ihr Schwager Heinrich Nikolaus Liman (Bruder von Markus Theodors Gemahlin und Onkel der Henriette Solmar) vermietete. Auch unter dieser Adresse, die ihre letzte sein sollte, gab Rahel Varnhagen von Ense wieder Gesellschaften, an denen unter anderen die Familie Mendelssohn, der Philosoph Hegel, Heinrich Heine, Eduard Gans, Ludwig Börne und der Fürst Hermann von Pückler-Muskau teilnahmen. Einige Male besuchte das Ehepaar Varnhagen auf Reisen Goethe in Weimar und das Kurbad in Tepl itz, wo Friedrich Wilhelm III. im August 1822 mit Rahel Varnhagen von Ense mehrmals die Polonaise tanzte.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 308: Tyhmäkin nainen hoitelee fixun miehen mutta hölmön vain fixu. Rudyard Kipl ing M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 316: Olet aarteeni emme erkane (pl us luritusta) Larin Kyösti M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 356: Rakkaus ei ole mulle sopimus, vaan kaikenlaista tunnepl äjäystä. Risto Rasa M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 501: Karl Murdock Bowman (November 4, 1888 – March 2, 1973) was a pioneer in the study of psychiatry. From 1944 to 1946 he was the president of the American Psychiatric Association. His work in alcoholism, schizophrenia, and homosexuality is particularly often cited. In 1953, in "The Problem of Homosexuality," co-authored with Bernice Engle, he argued for multipl e causes, including genetics, but proposed that castration be studied as a cure. However, in 1961 he appeared in the television documentary The Rejected presenting the viewpoint that homosexuality is not a mental illness and should be legalized.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 533: Interprète militaire et officier de liaison auprès du BEF (Corps Expéditionnaire Britannique) en France et en Flandres pendant la Première Guerre mondiale, Maurois écrit en 1918 Les Silences du colonel Bramble, ouvrage qui connaîtra un vif succès tant en France que dans les pays anglo-saxons. Il y traduisit sous le titre Tu seras un homme, mon fils le célèbre poème If de Rudyard Kipl ing. Cet ouvrage sera suivi des Discours du docteur O´Grady. Les événements de cette guerre lui fournissent son pseudonyme « Maurois », nom d´un village du nord de la France.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 538: Le maréchal Pétain soutiendra sa candidature à l´Académie française ; il y est élu le 23 juin 1938, au fauteuil 26, qu´occupait René Doumic. Respecté de ses pairs, il restera assis dans le fauteuil près de trente ans. Par un décret du président de la République du 27 juin 1947, il est autorisé à changer de patronyme de Herzog en André-Maurois. Son nom de pl ume devient ainsi son nom officiel.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 544: He had a good education at the lycée in Rouen, falling under the influence of a charismatic teacher, Émile-Auguste Chartier, known as “Alain.” Alain inspired other pupils, too, including Simone Weil and Raymond Aron, urging them to question received ideas. He gave Maurois a love of literature but also, perhaps surprisingly, urged him to take up the mill business after leaving school. Maurois did so, but in his Elbeuf office he kept a secret cupboard filled with Balzac novels and notebooks, and copied out pages of Stendhal to improve his writing style. He became a Kipl ing enthusiast, and learned excellent English. He travelled to Paris at least one day a week, and frequented brothels there.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 546: But then he fell in love! Emppu rakastui Geneven lomalla 16-vuotiaaseen koulutyttöön kuin Vladi Lolitaan. Janine matched a templ ate that he had got from a book that influenced his erotic fantasies permanently. With her Slavic features and her cool, rather fey manner, Wanda "Janine" de Szymkiewicz (though Polish) made a perfect Russian queen. She called him Minou, he called her Ginou. Sini ja mini. Sometime in the early nineteen-twenties, Maurois began having affairs. Janine had them, too, or at least flirtations, aquarels of fucking, especially on their seaside vacations in Deauville. Maurois put a lot of his own personality into Shelley, and wrote of Harriet as a “child-wife” made bitter by unhappiness. Emil could be savage: “Even when she had the air of being interested in ideas, her indifference was proved by the blankness of her gaze. Worst of all, she was coquettish, frivolous, versed in the tricks and wiles of woman.” Fortunately, becoming pregnant again in late 1922, Janine developed septicemia, was operated on unsuccessfully, and died on February 26, 1923. Maurois was bereaved, and free. Jahuu! Vihelteliköhän sekin koko matkan hautajaisiin kuten Peppy? Rakkaus on hassuttelua yhdessä.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 548: Jean Anouilh (/a.nuj/) est un dramaturge et scénariste français né le 23 juin 1910 à Bordeaux (Gironde) et mort le 3 octobre 1987 à Lausanne (Suisse). Son œuvre théâtrale commencée en 1932 est particulièrement abondante et variée : elle est constituée de nombreuses comédies souvent grinçantes et d´œuvres à la tonalité dramatique ou tragique comme sa pièce la pl us célèbre, Antigone, réécriture moderne de la pièce de Sophocle. Mulla taitaa olla se.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 552: Après la guerre apparaissent les Pièces brillantes qui jouent sur la mise en abyme du théâtre au théâtre (La Répétition ou l´Amour puni en 1947, Colombe en 1951), puis les Pièces grinçantes, comédies satiriques comme Pauvre Bitos ou le Dîner de têtes (1956). Dans la même période, Jean Anouilh s´intéresse dans des Pièces costumées à des figures lumineuses qui se sacrifient au nom du devoir : envers la patrie comme Jeanne d´Arc dans L´Alouette (1953) ou envers Dieu comme Thomas Becket (Becket ou l´Honneur de Dieu en 1959). Le dramaturge a continué dans le même temps à servir le genre de la comédie dans de nombreuses pièces où il mêle farce et ironie (par exempl e Les Poissons rouges ou Mon père ce héros en 1970) jusque dans les dernières années de sa vie.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 576: Risto Rasan vanhemmat ovat dipl omi-insinööri Raimo Rasa ja yo-merkonomi Liisa o.s. Marjanen. Rasa on syntynyt Helsingissä mutta viettänyt pääosan lapsuudestaan ja nuoruudestaan Vaasassa. Hän on toiminut kirjastonhoitajana eri paikkakunnilla, muun muassa Varkaudessa ja vuodesta 1989 Somerolla. Hän valmistui kirjastonhoitajaksi Tampereelta 1987. Rasa on ollut naimisissa vuodesta 1974. Sotilasarvoltaan Rasa on korpraali. Vuonna 2019 Rasalle myönnettiin siitä hyvästä taiteilijaeläke.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 582: Jean Rostand , né le 30 octobre 1894 à Paris (17e arrondissement) et mort le 4 septembre 1977 à Ville-d´Avray (Hauts-de-Seine), était un écrivain, moraliste, biologiste, historien des sciences et académicien français. Très intéressé par les origines de la vie, il étudie la biologie des batraciens (grenouilles, crapauds, tritons et autres), la parthénogenèse, l´action du froid sur les œufs, et promeut de multipl es recherches sur l´hérédité. Avec conviction et enthousiasme, il s´efforce de vulgariser la biologie auprès d´un large public (il reçoit en 1959 le prix Kalinga de vulgarisation scientifique) et d´alerter l´opinion sur la gravité et des problèmes humains qu´elle pose. Considérant la biologie comme devant être porteuse d´une morale, il met en garde contre les dangers qui menacent les humains lorsqu´ils jouent aux apprentis sorciers, comme les tenants de l´eugénisme. Toutefois, Rostand soutient une forme d´« eugénisme 'positif' », approuvant certains écrits d´Alexis Carrel et la stérilisation des personnes atteintes de certaines formes graves de maladies mentales, ce qui fut rapproché, après la guerre, de la loi nazie de 1933, et lui fut reproché dans un contexte où l´eugénisme est une idéologie encore répandue avec des auteurs comme Julian Huxley, premier directeur de l´UNESCO (1946-1948).
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 590: British Eugenics Society oli Darwinin serkun Sir Francis Galtonin aivopieruja. Galton ei selvinnyt laajennetusta matematiikasta ja lääkärinopinnotkin jäi sitten kesken. Tehdäänpä sensijaan nazimeisingillä selvää muista misfiteistä! Galtonin veljexiin kuului mm iljexet Julian ja Aldous Huxley, H.G.Wells, Winston Churchill, Bertrand Russell ja Charles Darwin. "Man is gifted with pity and other kindly feelings; he has also the power of preventing many kinds of suffering. I conceive it to fall well within his province to repl ace Natural Selection by other processes that are more merciful and not less effective. This is precisely the aim of Eugenics.” Since wars begin in the minds of men and women, it is in the minds of men and women that the defences of peace must be constructed. (UNESCO)
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 596: Max Ernst (2 April 1891 – 1 April 1976) was a German (naturalised American in 1948 and French in 1958) painter, sculptor, graphic artist, and poet. A prolific artist, Ernst was a primary pioneer of the Dada movement and surrealism. He had no formal artistic training, but his experimental attitude toward the making of art resulted in his invention of frottage—a technique that uses pencil rubbings of objects as a source of images—and grattage, an analogous technique in which paint is scraped across canvas to reveal the imprints of the objects pl aced beneath. He is also noted for his novels consisting of collages. Vitun tuhertaja. Onko hölmömpää kuin noi Maxin älynväläyxet? Se on yhtä puupää kuin Wolfram Rothin isäpuoli Ernst Rüdiger. Turmiolan Hannu on kyllä raapinut aforismikasaansa ihan pahnanpohjatkin. Oscar Wilden turauxet puolestaan on tyypillistä homopetteröintiä.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 603: The teachings of George Ivanovitch Gurdjieff pl ayed an important role in Anderson's life. Anderson met Gurdjieff in Paris and, together with Leblanc, began studies with him, focusing on his original teaching called The Fourth Way. Along with Katherine Mansfield and Jane Heap, she remains one of the most noted institutees of Gurdjieff´s, Institute for the Harmonious Development of Man, at Fontainebleau, near Paris, from October 1922 to 1924. Anderson studied with Gurdjieff in France until his death in October 1949, writing about him and his teachings in most of her books, most extensively in her memoir, The Unknowable Gurdjieff. By 1942 her relationship with Heap had cooled. Anderson sailed for the United States. Jane Heap had moved to London in 1935, where she led Gurdjieff study groups until her death in 1964. With her passage paid by Ernest Hemingway, Anderson met on the voyage Dorothy Caruso, widow of the singer and famous tenor Enrico Caruso. The two began a romantic relationship, and lived together until Dorothy´s death in 1955. Anderson returned to Le Cannet, and there she died of emphysema on October 19, 1973.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 605: ploads/2012/03/Jacques_Maritain-1200x800.jpg" style="width:10%;float:right" />
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 608: Il fut ambassadeur de France au Vatican de 1945 à 1948. Il avait épousé Raïssa Oumansoff, poète et philosophe d´origine juive. Les œuvres compl ètes de Maritain sont co-signées avec Raïssa.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 615: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/2d/Felix_Dahn.jpg" style="width:10%;float:right"/>
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 621: Markku Juhani Lahtela (1. elokuuta 1936 Kemijärvi – 31. heinäkuuta 1980 Nummi) oli suomalainen kirjailija. Hänet tunnettiin radikaaleista yhteiskunnallisista kannanotoista, sillä hän oli humanististen tieteiden kandidaatti (Helsingin yliopisto 1963). Lahtela suomensi teoksia, joista keskusteltiin 1960-luvulla paljon, muun muassa A. S. Neillin teoksen Summerhill, joka oli niin sanotun vapaan kasvatuksen perusteos, sekä yhden beat-kirjallisuuden tunnetuimmista teoksista, Jack Kerouacin Matkalla. Keväällä 1967 Lahtela herätti huomiota polttaessaan julkisesti sotilaspassinsa Helsingissä Espl anadin puistossa Kalevi Seilosen, Ilpo Saunion ja Tauno Tuomivaaran kanssa. Miehet kärähtivät ja Mara tuomittiin sakkoihin. Lahtelan isä oli kansanedustaja ja ministeri Olavi Lahtela, äiti kirjailija Kyllikki Kallas ja isänisä kansanedustaja Matti Lahtela. SDP:n poliitikko Mikael Jungner on hänen sisarenpoikansa. Lahtela kärsi alkoholismista. Hän teki itsemurhan pyssyllä vuonna 1980. Taisi olla aihetta. Markku Lahtelan kirja "Se" (1966) oli "huikea".
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 630: Maureen Patricia Duffy (born 21 October 1933) is an English poet, pl aywright, novelist and non-fiction author. Long an activist covering such issues as gay rights and animal rights, she campaigns especially on behalf of authors. She has received the Benson & Hedges Medal for her damn long writings.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 28: LIFESTYLE play:none">EAT!
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 43: In seiner frühen Studienzeit beschäftigte er sich u. a. mit Spiritismus, einem Gebiet, das damals, wie seine Biografin Deirdre Bair 2005 schrieb, «als mit der Psychiatrie verwandt» angesehen wurde. Sein Interesse für okkulte Phänomene wurde durch zwei unerklärliche parapsychologische Erscheinungen in seinem ersten Studiensemester geweckt: Ein pl ötzliches Zerreissen eines Tisches und sauberes Zerspringen eines Brotmessers habe er beobachtet.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 47: Die Ergebnisse seiner Assoziationsexperimente, verknüpft mit den Überlegungen von Pierre Janet in Paris und Théodore Flournoy in Genf, brachten Jung zur Annahme der von ihm so genannten «gefühlsbetonten Kompl exe». Er sah darin die Bestätigung von Sigmund Freuds Theorie der Verdrängung, die ihm die einzig sinnvolle Erklärung für solche sich autonom verhaltenden, aber dem Bewusstsein schwer zugänglichen Gedankeneinheiten war.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 58: ploads/2015/03/4a83e-6.jpg?w=616&ssl=1" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 212: Pankinjohtaja Jääskeläisestä on myönnettävä, että hän on ahkera pl okivammainen.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 322: Korhosen mukaan on nimetty asteroidi eli pikkupl aneetta 2988 Korhonen. Hän on kaikesta huolimatta naimisissa, ja liitosta on kaksi lasta peilien ja pikkupl aneetan lisäxi. Kirjailija Riku Korhonen on Tapio Korhosen poika. Jompikumpi Korhosista sai Lundin yliopiston kunniatohtorin arvon 1.6.1990.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 324: 2988 Korhonen on tähtitieteilijä Liisi Oterman vuonna 1943 löytämä asteroidi eli pikkupl aneetta. Se on nimetty tähtitieteilijä Tapio Korhosen mukaan. Korhosen likimääräinen läpimitta on 200 senttimetriä. Kohde sijaitsee Auringosta suunnilleen 2,61 kertaa niin kaukana kuin Maa, ja sen kierros Auringon ympäri kestää noin 4 vuotta ja 3 kuukautta. Vaikka sieltä löytyisi älyllistä elämää, se ei horjuttaisi kristityn tähtitieteilijän uskoa. Petri Väisäselle tähtitiede kertoo maailmankaikkeuden olevan Jumalan valtakunta. ”Peruslähtökohtani on kristillinen usko.” Tähtitiedepiireissä on paljon kristittyjä. Ne toivovat pääsevänsä taivaaseen kuin 2988 Korhonen.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 351: Suomi elää rauhallisessa pikku kupl assa, jonka ulkopuolella on käsittämätöntä väkivaltaa eikä ihmiselämä ole minkään arvoinen. Vaan ei enää kauan! Nato-sopimus on enää viikon päässä!
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 441: So i read Smarra quite a while ago but from what i remember its compl ete nonsense. Just random surrealism stuff, they say there´s a vampire in there somewhere but i recall no evidence to that.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 445: Smarra gets two stars, both were disappointing chores to read. If you are considering taking up Smarra because you heard it was the earliest vampire story, I think you´re heading for disappointment. In a dream sequence, some undead creatures with sharpened teeth that like to drink blood are described, but nothing further. There´s no real vampire lore or any characterization of vampirism to sink one´s teeth into. I had a hard time figuring out the pl ot of Smarra, but I think it´s mostly about a man trying to wake up from bad dreams and finding out he can´t. The dreams are recounted vaguely, in terms of pl ot, but in excruciating detail, in terms of vision, none of which has its significance expl ained.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 447: I appreciate the novella has a pl ot, but this strength is not enough to overcome the story´s weaknesses, which for me were 1) overly long paragraphs of narrative--one went for almost six pages, and 2) a lack of understanding until almost halfway through the story what the stakes for the protagonist were.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 540: Väitellessä naiset hyväxyy manspl ainingin muttei johtopäätöstä. Albert Guinon M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 600: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/ba/Emilie_Chatelet_portrait_by_Latour.jpg/375px-Emilie_Chatelet_portrait_by_Latour.jpg" style="float:right;width:10%" />
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 601: Émilie du Châtelet (également écrit du Chastelet, ou du Chastellet), dont le nom compl et est Gabrielle Émilie Le Tonnelier de Breteuil, marquise du Châtelet, née le 17 décembre 1706 à Paris et morte le 10 septembre 1749 à Lunéville (alors dans le duché de Lorraine), est une femme de lettres, mathématicienne et physicienne française du Siècle des Lumières.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 605: Elle a eu une longue liaison avec Voltaire, qui l'a encouragée à poursuivre ses recherches scientifiques, mais c'est Samuel König, discipl e de Jean Bernoulli, qui lui fait découvrir la physique de Leibniz.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 617: At age 17, he rebelled against his parents' wishes that he take up a military career, and ran away to Paris. In 1901, his pl ay Chérubin was produced at the Comédie-Française where Cécile Sorel (later the Comtesse de Ségur) made her debut in it. Jules Massenet set Chérubin to music and, in 1905, Mary Garden sang its première at the Opéra de Monte-Carlo.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 623: Il est le père de Philippe Wiener de Croisset, patron de presse (père de l'homme d'affaires Charles de Croisset) et de Germaine Wiener de Croisset, épouse de l'artiste peintre et critique d'art Roger Lannes de Montebello (1908-1986) et mère de Philippe Lannes de Montebello, qui fut pendant pl us de trente ans directeur du Metropolitan Museum of Art de New York. This is how the hot-dog crossed the Atlantic and became a household pet in the U.S.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 633: Fontenellen tuotantoon kuuluu valistusajan varhaisin merkkiteoksiin kuuluva filosofinen Entretiens sur la pl uralité des mondes (1686). Pitkäikäinen Fontenelle kuoli Pariisissa kuukautta ennen kuin olisi täyttänyt sata vuotta. Merde!
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 637: Esofagus pseudonyme de Pierre Faillet 1872-1933. Danse Macabre. Vai olixe George? FAGUS 2068 (pseudonyme de Georges Faillet). Né de parents français à Bruxelles le 22 janvier 1872, mort accidentellement à Paris le 9 novembre 1933. Notes biographiques : Il a occupé un empl oi à la préfecture de la Seine. Il collabora dès vingt ans aux revues littéraires La Plume, La Revue blanche, La Revue de Champagne, L´occident, le Mercure de France, assuma la direction de la ... Tästä hemmosta ei ole edes nenänpäätä pinnalla. Enintään näppylä ja karva. Un volume in-8, broché, non coupé.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 639: Gerfaut Philippe pseudonyme de Marguerite Dardenne de La Grangerie. Pensées d´un sceptique. Usant de pl usieurs pseudonymes tels que Philippe Gerfaut et Marie-Alix de Valtine, elle est l´auteur entre autres du roman Le passé de Claudie (1884), des Pensées d´un sceptique (1886) et de Belle et bonne histoire d´une grande fillette (Prix Lambert en 1890).
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 640: Son mari, Albert Dardenne de la Grangerie, était fameux journaliste, rédacteur entres autres du Figaro et du Messager du Midi. Marguerite de la Grangerie fut avec son mari très liée au coupl e Gautier, Judith et Théophile. Elle était la petite-fille du duc de Persigny, propriétaire du chateau de Chamarande ou Théo séjourna en 1866. Ce dernier lui dédiera d’ailleurs deux sonnets dont « les poètes chinois… ». Usant de pl usieurs pseudonymes tels que Philippe Gerfaut et Marie-Alix de Valtine, elle est l’auteur entre autres du roman Le passé de Claudie (1884), des Pensées d’un sceptique (1886) et de Belle et bonne histoire d’une grande fillette (Prix Lambert en 1890). Superbe exempl aire dans une reliure mosaïquée parfaitement établi par Louis Pouillet. Petites taches pâles sur le pl at supérieur. Gerfaut puuttuu Vaakun hakemistosta.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 642: Maurice Houber Remarques sur l'amour ... Muu kuin etukansi ei ole ylittänyt google-kynnystä. Mitä ihmiset sanovat - Kirjoita arvostelu. Yhtään arvostelua ei löytynyt. E. Sancotin liha ja leikkele & cie, 1913. 1 works in 7 publications in 1 language and 175 library holdings. Samassa googlauxessa nousi pintaan Albert Ernest Nicholas Simms: St Paul and the Women's Movement. C.L.W.S. Pamphlets, Numero 3 / Church League for Women's Suffrage pamphlets. Kustantaja Church League for Women's Suffrage, 1913, ja Marital Power Exempl ified in Mrs. Packard's Trial, and Self-defence from the Charge of Insanity, Or, Three Years' Imprisonment for Religious Belief, by the Arbitrary Will of a Husband: With an Appeal to the Government to So Change the Laws as to Protect the Rights of Married Women. By Elizabeth Parsons Ware Packard. The Authoress, 1893. 0 Arvostelut.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 644: Elizabeth Parsons Ware Packard (28 December, 1816 – 25 July, 1897), also known as E.P.W. Packard, was an American advocate for the rights of women and peopl e accused of insanity. She was wrongfully confined by her husband who claimed that she had been insane, for more than three years. At her trial, 3 yrs later, a jury took just seven minutes to find her not insane. Pezku koitti samaa Kikalle Hangossa heikommin tuloxin, valkotakit veivät Petterin.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 646: At the insistence of her parents, Elizabeth Parsons Ware married Calvinist minister Theophilus Packard, fourteen years her senior and said to be "cold and domineering", on 21 May 1839. The coupl e had 6 at least 6 times cause they had 6 children. She later founded the Anti-Insane Asylum Society, campaigning for divorced women to retain custody of their children.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 648: Theophilus, however, held quite decisive religious beliefs. After many years of marriage, Elizabeth Packard outwardly questioned her husband's beliefs and began expressing opinions that were contrary to his. While the main subject of their dispute was religion, the coupl e also disagreed on child rearing, family finances, and the issue of slavery, with Elizabeth defending John Brown, which embarrassed Theophilus. What was worst, she also worked as a teacher in Jacksonville, Illinois.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 650: When Illinois opened its first hospital for the mentally ill in 1851, the state legislature passed a law that within two years of its passage was amended to require a public hearing before a person could be committed against his or her will. There was one exception, however: a husband could have his wife committed without either a public hearing or her consent. In 1860, Theophilus Packard judged that his wife was "slightly insane", a condition he attributed to "excessive appl ication of body and mind". He arranged for a doctor, J.W. Brown, to speak with her. The doctor pretended to be a sewing machine salesman. During their conversation, Elizabeth compl ained of her husband's domination and his accusations to others that she was insane. Dr. Brown reported this conversation to Theophilus (along with the observation that Mrs. Packard "exhibited a great dislike to me"). Theophilus decided to have Elizabeth committed. She learned of this decision on June 18, 1860, when the county sheriff arrived at the Packard home to take her into custody.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 652: Elizabeth Packard spent the next three years at the Jacksonville Insane Asylum in Jacksonville, IL (now the Jacksonville Developmental Center). She was regularly questioned by her doctors but refused to agree that she was insane or to change her religious views. In June 1863, due, in part, to pressure from her children, who wished her released, the doctors declared that she was incurable and discharged her. Upon her discharge, Theophilus locked her in the nursery of their home and nailed the windows shut. Elizabeth managed to drop a letter compl aining of this treatment out the window, which was delivered to her friend Sarah Haslett. Sarah Haslett in turn delivered the letter to Judge Charles Starr, who issued a writ of habeas corpus ordering Theophilus to bring Elizabeth to his chambers to discuss the matter. After being presented with Theophilus' evidence, Judge Starr scheduled a jury trial to allow a legal determination of Elizabeth's sanity to take pl ace.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 656: Elizabeth's lawyers, Stephen Moore and John W. Orr, responded by calling witnesses from the neighborhood that knew the Packards but were not members of Theophilus' church. These witnesses testified they never saw Elizabeth exhibit any signs of insanity, while discussing religion or otherwise. The final witness was Dr. Duncanson, who was both a physician and a theologian. Dr. Duncanson had interviewed Elizabeth and he testified that while not necessarily in agreement with all her religious beliefs, she was sane in his view, arguing that "I do not call peopl e insane because they differ with me. I pronounce her a sane woman and wish we had a nation of such women.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 662: With that, she did not go back to her former life, but became a national celebrity of sorts, publishing "an armload of books and criss-crossing the United States on a decades-long reform campaign", not only fighting for married women's rights and freedom of speech, but calling out against "the power of insane asylums". She became what some scholars call "a publicist and lobbyist for better insanity laws". As scholar Kathryn Burns-Howard has argued, Packard reinvented herself in this rôle, earning enough to support her children and even her estranged husband, from whom she remained separated for the rest of her life. Ultimately, moderate supporters of women's rights in the northern U.S. embraced her, weaving her story into arguments about slavery, framing her experience as a type of enslavement and even arguing in the midst of the Civil War that a county in the midst of freeing African-American slaves should do the same for others who suffered from abusive husbands. Some argue that she seemed oblivious to her racial prejudice in arguing that white women had a "moral and spiritual nature" and suffered more "spiritual agony" than formerly enslaved African-Americans. Even so, others say that her story provided "a stirring exampl e of oppressed womanhood" that others did not.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 666: Elizabeth realized how narrow her legal victory had been; while she had escaped confinement, it was largely a measure of luck. The underlying social principl es which had led to her confinement still existed. She founded the Anti-Insane Asylum Society and published several books, including Marital Power Exempl ified, or Three Years Imprisonment for Religious Belief (1864), Great Disclosure of Spiritual Wickedness in High Places (1865), The Mystic Key or the Asylum Secret Unlocked (1866), and The Prisoners' Hidden Life, Or Insane Asylums Unveiled (1868). In 1867, the State of Illinois passed a "Bill for the Protection of Personal Liberty" which guaranteed that all peopl e accused of insanity, including wives, had the right to a public hearing. She also saw similar laws passed in three other states. Even so, she was strongly attacked by medical professionals and anonymous citizens, unlike others such as Dorothea Dix, with her former doctor from the Jacksonville Insane Asylum, Dr. McFarland, who privately called her "a sort of Joan D'Arc in the matter of stirring up the personal prejudices". As such, Elizabeth's work on this front was "broadly unappreciated" while she was alive. She only received broader recognition, starting in the 1930s, by a well-known historian of mental illness, Albert Deutsch, and again in the 1960s from those who were "attacking the medical model of insanity".
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 672: William Wilkie Collins (8 January 1824 – 23 September 1889) was an English novelist and pl aywright known for The Woman in White (1859), and for The Moonstone (1868), which has been posited as the first modern English detective novel. Born to the London painter William Collins and his wife, he moved with the family to Italy when he was twelve, living there and in France for two years and learning Italian and French. He worked initially as a tea merchant. After publishing Antonina, his first novel, in 1850, Collins met Charles Dickens, who became a friend and mentor. Some Collins work first appeared in Dickens's journals Household Words and All the Year Round. They also collaborated on drama and fiction. Collins gained financial stability and an international following by the 1860s, but began to suffer from gout and became addicted to the opium he took for the pain, so that his health and writing quality declined in the 1870s and 1880s. Collins was critical of the institution of marriage: he spl it his time between widow Caroline Graves – living with her for most of his adult life, treating her daughter as his – and the younger Martha Rudd, by whom he had three children.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 699: Ont rempl acé Ovat korvanneet
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 736: Peter Nygårds vänner tex Aira Samulin känner sig lite obekväma om Peters svarta sida. Peter Nygårds aptit på unga kvinnor var bottenlös. Peter Nygård var en skitstövel, säger en ex-anställd. Men nu avslöjer HBL Peters gula sida! Peter Nygård ser ut som en av de kinesiska hjältarna i Marvels nya film. Peter Nygård i sina jetset-millionär-modekungadagar såg ut precis som Ronny Chieng med Akwafina, spelandes Jon-Jon i Marvel´s fantasifilm Tio ringar. Peter sku säkert ha betalt Awkwafinas tandläkarräkningar. Jag med! After Hours, Awkwafina Gets Naked And Watches ASMR Videos. But she has not leaked them as yet, aw shucks. (Autonomous Sensory Meridian Response (ASMR) is a pl easurable, tingling sensation usually felt in the brain, but can spread to the rest of the body. It frequently occurs when watching things such as demonstrations, foreign accents, expl anations, naked Asian ladies, etc., and it´s a generally wonderful feeling. I´ve experienced ASMR all my life, but never knew it had a name until now, so hooray I guess!)
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 828: pling" title="Rudyard Kipl ing">Rudyard Kipl ing
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 28:
Tuomiopäivän pasuunat play:none">KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 114: Sometimes God forces peo
pl e to eat other peo
pl e, often their own children or other family members.
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 124: "Through the wrath of the LORD of hosts is the land darkened, and the peo
pl e shall be as the fuel of the fire: no man shall spare his brother. And he shall snatch on the right hand, and be hungry; and he shall eat on the left hand, and they shall not be satisfied: they shall eat every man the flesh of his own arm." -- Isaiah 9:19-20
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 141: "Who
pl uck off their skin from off them, and their flesh from off their bones; Who also eat the flesh of my peo
pl e, and flay their skin from off them; and they break their bones, and chop them in pieces, as for the pot, and as flesh within the caldron." -- Micah 3:2-3
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 170:
Credo quia absurdum is a Latin phrase that means "I believe because it is absurd", originally misattributed to Tertullian in his De Carne Christi. It is believed to be a paraphrasing of Tertullian's
prorsus credibile est, quia ineptum est which means "It is com
pl etely credible because it is unsuitable", or
certum est, quia impossibile which means "It is certain because it is impossible". These are consistent with the anti-Marcionite context. Early modern, Protestant and Enlightenment rhetoric against Catholicism and religion more broadly resulted in this phrase being changed to "I believe because it is absurd", dis
pl aced from its original anti-Marcionite to a personally religious context.
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 305:
J:a ei uskonto pahemmin kiinnosta. William Templ e M KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 561:
Johann Gottfried Seume (1763 Weissenfelsin lähellä – 1810 Te
pl itz) oli saksalainen kirjailija. Hän opiskeli teologiaa Leipzigissa, mutta hänen ollessaan matkalla Pariisiin 1781 hesseläiset värvärit kaappasivat hänet ja veivät Amerikkaan, missä hän palveli sotilaana Kanadassa. Kotimatkalla hän jäi preussilaisten värvärien käsiin ja päätyi tavallisena sotilaana Emdeniin, mistä hänet jonkin ajan kuluttua lunastettiin vapaaksi.
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 579: Myös Vilpittömän Nahkurin Runous-nettiradion kuudes sarja on juuri alkanut, ja tämän päivän jaksossa entinen runoilijapalkinnon saaja Carola Anna Tussua pohtii lähetysennusteen rukousmaista laatua: ‘There’s never been a time when you could just say anything’: Frank Skinner on free speech, his bullying shame – and knob [kyrvännuppi] jokes. This poetry-loving, religious knob has deep regrets about some of his comedy: either the standup comic has grown up, or he was never as laddish as his image suggested. Nearing death and last judgment, he is hoping to perform a “cleaner, cleverer” kind of act, one that would let him look straight at the crowd and – perhaps for the first time in his life – not see anybody squirming in their seat in discomfort. “It was a struggle,” the 65-year-old says with a grin, “because I realised that I seem to think in knob jokes. And I have done since I was about 13. In the West Midlands, that was how peo
pl e communicated!”
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 581: 30 Years of Dirt is not, then, a compendium of Skinner’s best sex gags – of which there have been
pl enty over the years. Rather, it’s a comedic journey through his attempt to de-smutify his brain for the modern woke audience, a kind of personal challenge: can he even be funny without talking about penises? (No, he gets boring as a prayer book.)
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 583: “I don’t think there’s ever been a time when you could just say anything.” He recalls an early comedy show – this must have been in the late 80s – where the host apologised to the crowd after Skinner had performed some risque sexual material. “He said I’d never
pl ay at the venue again – and then he launched into a load of racist material and brought the house down. Everyone’s got their own standards and restraints. But I think it’s been good for me to keep questioning what I say. It’s made me think more positively about racist jokes and not so much about penises. My knob is not working anymore BTW, I'm 65. We’re both dee
pl y ashamed. Can't lift our eye to the public.”
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 585: So the other day, he blacked up as [black footballer] Lee for a sketch, com
pl ete with a pineap
pl e to represent his hair. Boy that went down in the colored audience! Skinner has been that funny for as long as he can remember as far as he can remember. He has a masters in English literature; he is a practising Roman catholic. What a laugh. Skinner once had a chat with Eddie Izzard about what they could share about their lives on stage. It was fine for Izzard to discuss wearing women’s clothes, but as for Skinner’s own religious beliefs about God's knob? God, no. Too shameful.
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 607:
VIDEO
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 621:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/ae/Elisabeth_of_Wied.jpg" width="20%" />
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 643:
Loppupeleissä on kaikki kuvottavaa. Charlie Chapl in M KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 765:
Christine Chubbuck (August 24, 1944 – July 15, 1974) was an American television news reporter who worked for WTOG and WXLT-TV in Sarasota, Florida. She was the first person to die by suicide on a live television broadcast. She lamented to co-workers that her 30th birthday was approaching, and she was still a virgin who had never been on more than two dates with a man. Co-workers said she tended to be brusque and defensive whenever they made friendly gestures toward her. She was self-deprecating, criticizing herself constantly and rejecting any com
pl iments others paid her. The film reel of the restaurant shooting had jammed and would not run, so Chubbuck shrugged it off and said on-camera, "In keeping with the WXLT practice of presenting the most immediate and com
pl ete reports of local blood and guts news, TV 40 presents what is believed to be a television first. In living color, an exclusive coverage of an attempted suicide." She drew the .38-caliber Smith & Wesson Model 36 revolver and shot herself behind her right ear. Chubbuck fell forward violently and the technical director faded the broadcast rapidly to black. "The crux of the situation was that she was a 29-year-old girl who wanted to be married and who wasn't," Simmons said in 1977.
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 767:
Paul Claudel , né le 6 août 1868 à Villeneuve-sur-Fère (Aisne), et mort le 23 février 1955 à Paris, est un dramaturge, poète, essayiste et di
pl omate français, membre de l´Académie française. Il est le frère de la sculptrice Camille Claudel. Paul est le frère cadet de Louise Claudel, pianiste, née en 1866, et de la sculptrice Camille Claudel, laquelle réalisera en 1884 son buste « en jeune Romain »
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 776: Pendant la guerre d’Espagne, Claudel apporta son soutien aux franquistes. Devant la Seconde Guerre mondiale, Claudel est initialement peu convaincu par le danger que représente l'Allemagne nazie. Il s'inquiète davantage de la puissante Russie, qui représente selon lui une « infâme canaille communiste ». Claudel ex
pl iqua ses flatteries à Pétain par l'approbation d'une partie de sa politique (lutte contre l'alcoolisme, appui aux écoles libres). Il est meilleures amis avec Francois Mauriac.
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 27:
ple;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Erika Vikman ja Arttu Viskari
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 28:
ple;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Tääl on niin kuuma play:none">Virallinen musiikkivideo
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 79:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 110: Caregiver, Carl Jung, com
pl ex, Creator, Everyman, Ex
pl orer, Gemini, Hero, Innocent,
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 120: Carl Jung oli 1 modernin psygologian originelleja, joka koittaa luoda dialogia tajuttomiin energioihin jotka liikkuu izekunkin meistä läpitte. Hän jakoi monia ideoita jotka jatkaa meidän kaa: kom
pl exi, arkkityyppi, pirsuuna, varjo, sielu (f) ja sielu (m), pirsoonallisuustyypit, unien tulkinta (no tää on kyllä Freudin idea), yxilöinti, ja monia muita älynvälähdyxiä. Hällä oli syvä kunnioitus uuden elämän luomiseen ja hää piti henkisyyttä keskeisenä kaluna apinan kassissa.
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 160: Ex
pl orer
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 249: Strategy:
pl ay, make jokes, be funny
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 258: Jill Alden Pylkkänen on kaxonen. On se ehkä pelle muttei sen kanssa auta pelleillä. Olkkari ja Mikko Alapuro on kaxosia, vaikkei keskenään. Molemmat on (oli) aika jäyhiä. Samma här sano kaxoset kun kummallakin oli
pl ödät housussa.
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 272: Weakness: martyrdom and being ex
pl oited
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 331: Goal: being in a relationship with the peo
pl e, work and surroundings they love
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 337: Weakness: outward-directed desire to
pl ease others at risk of losing own identity
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 382: Desire: the freedom to find out who you are through ex
pl oring the world
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 480: Fair, Di
pl omatic And Romantic: Welcome Libra Season
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 534: Toisin kuin muurahaisilla, termiittikoiraat eivät ole ha
pl oideja, vaan koiraita ja naaraita syntyy yhtä paljon, joskin vain hyvin harvat niistä kehittyvät sukukypsiksi.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 28:
SOLD play:none">Somepöhinää
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 80:
Voilà my list of worthwhile reads. Initially, I thought about it as a list of books to read before you die, but it’s more like a list of books to read while you live. There’s lots of wisdom and useful knowledge in them. And obviously, there are pl enty more which could (should) be added. Hope you enjoy them if you haven’t already :)
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 119: The magical community is treated as “more special” than the “normal” community, which is treated with distrust and disdain. Although I love the Weasleys, it’s entirely possible that Mr. Weasley’s obsession with non-magical ephemera could be viewed as the anthropologist expl oring a primitive culture. Mr. Weasley collects artifacts because he is fascinated with them, not because he wants to understand non-magical culture better. That should be totally off-putting to the liberal crowd, but they missed it. They are too busy justifying the racism and bigotry as the product of the “pure blood” families.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 123: There is no attempt ever made by the wizarding world to integrate into “normal” human society. The train to Hogwart’s is on an invisible pl atform (forgive me if I get the details slightly wrong: it’s been a while); characters travel by chimney or broom; everything is done in secret.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 127: There was the elitist attitude that the peopl e in the outside world would “just not understand,” or they would be “scared and mistrustful” of the wizarding world. This is a very liberal mindset: they are “progressive,” and the rest of us will not understand their grand scheme.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 133: Kyle Baggett says: Shit it took me five mins to figure out how to repl y and I accidentally down voted you in the process so sorry about that. You have an interesting mind. Here are my choices:
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 178: Does it sound interesting if a protagonist is meant to have little to no relevance in the pl ot? How can a protagonist not have any relevance to the pl ot? Whichever character you do give relevance to becomes the protagonist.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 512: So where I start is with connection. Because, by the time you're a social worker for 10 years, what you realize is that connection is why we're here. It's what gives purpose and meaning to our lives. This is what it's all about. It doesn't matter whether you talk to peopl e who work in social justice, mental health and abuse and neglect, what we know is that connection, the ability to feel connected, is -- neurobiologically that's how we're wired -- it's why we're here. Olemme ohjelmoituja kuulumaan joukkoon. Voi hemmetti.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 514: And when you ask peopl e about connection, the stories they told me were about disconnection. I need to figure out what this is. And it turned out to be shame. And shame is really easily understood as the fear of disconnection: Is there something about me that, if other peopl e know it or see it, that I won't be worthy of connection? Is my butt not smelling right to the other bees? Will they kill me?
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 516: The things I can tell you about it: It's universal; we all have it. The only peopl e who don't experience shame have no capacity for human empathy or connection. No one wants to talk about it, and the less you talk about it, the more you have it.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 520: There was only one variable that separated the peopl e who have a strong sense of love and belonging and the peopl e who really struggle for it. And that was, the peopl e who have a strong sense of love and belonging believe they're worthy of love and belonging. That's it. These are whole-hearted peopl e, self-satisfied peopl e, living from this deep sense of worthiness. What they had in common was a sense of courage. Courage, the original definition of courage, when it first came into the English language -- it's from the Latin word "cor," meaning "heart" -- and the original definition was to be who you are with your whole heart (sydän taas, hui, yäk). And so these folks had, very simpl y, the courage to be imperfect.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 522: Fuck you hag, imperfect, perfect, pl uperfect, don't be so tense! Tää ämmä saarnaa palaamista vanhoihin sexirooleihin. Sen "ihmiset" on nimenomaan ämmiä. Narsisti pakenee häpeää. Lällällällää lieru, ämmiltä pääsi pieru, keskellä kirkon mäkkee, se oli suuri häppee. Apina ja gorilla kävelivät torilla kyselivät ämmiltä onko maito lämmintä ämmät huusi poliisia auttamaan. Brene Brownin BS mittari kilahtaa kuin Aku Ankan sirkuxen nuijapelin kello.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 526: They had the compassion to be kind to themselves first and then to others, because, as it turns out, we can't practice compassion with other peopl e if we can't treat ourselves kindly. We can't give to others if we don't pour a lot to ourselves first. And the last was they had connection, and -- this was the hard part -- as a result of authenticity, they were willing to let go of who they thought they should be in order to be who they were, which you have to absolutely do that for connection.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 530: Well, I have a vulnerability issue. I'm not sufficiently vulnerable. And I know that vulnerability is the core of shame and fear and our struggle for worthiness, but it appears that it's also the birthpl ace of joy, of creativity, of belonging, of love. And I think I have a problem, and I need some help." And I said, "But here's the thing: no family stuff, no childhood shit, that's way too vulnerable."
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 532: How would you define vulnerability? What makes you feel vulnerable? Having to ask my husband for help because I'm sick; initiating sex with my husband; initiating sex with my boss; Initiating sex with a bunch of strangers; being turned down; being turned upside down; asking someone out; asking someone in and out; waiting for the doctor to call back; waiting for the doctor to cum on my back; getting laid off; getting laid; laying off peopl e; getting laid by a bunch of peopl e. This is the world we live in. We live in a vulnerable world. And one of the ways we deal with it is we numb vulnerability. Apina kiipee puuhun, kakkaa gorillan suuhun.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 534: Because -- We are the most in-debt ... obese ... addicted and medicated adult cohort in U.S. history. Goodbye vulnerability, farewell grief, byebye shame, so long fear, see ya later disappointment. I don't want to feel you up. I'm going to have a coupl e of beers and a banana nut muffin. Move fat from my cheek to my butt.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 546: Yhtäkkiä kaikki vanhat ikävät muistot tulvahtivat Ramin mieleen. Yxikään tosimies ei razasta! Mikä raukkis! Mikä täydellinen typerys! Rami rakasti tallireissuja, mutta sai maxaa niistä kovan hinnan, 28e/varvi, pl us Nikon ja tämän jengin pilkan.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 590: Narcismus wird 1899 von Näcke geprägt und in die Wissenschaft eingeführt und als Narzissismus von Rank (spätestens ab 1909) und Freud (bis 1911) benutzt. Ableitung von Narziss bzw. älterem Narcis (junge, schöne, selbstverliebte griechische Sagengestalt) mit dem Derivatem (Ableitungsmorphem) -ismus. Statt der „logischen“ Ableitung Narzissismus (bzw. Narcisismus) entstand durch Hapl ologie Narzissmus (bzw. Narcismus). Freud benutzt eine Weile die längere, logischere Form, aber entscheidet sich dann 1911 bewusst für die „kürzere und weniger übelklingende“ Form.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 661: In June 2021, Licypriya was in the news as a crowdfunding appeal on Ketto seeking one crore rupees to buy 100 oxygen concentrators came under scrutiny following the arrest of her father and legal guardian Kangujam Karnajit, on May 31st 2021. Her father, also known as KK Singh, was declared an absconder and had fled Manipur in 2016 after he was arrested and let out on interim bail following multipl e charges. These charges were for duping several self-help groups, hotels and individuals of more than Rs 19 lakh for a Global Youth Meet that he had organised in Imphal in 2014. His latest arrest was for fresh charges relating to his chairmanship of the International Youth Committee, an organisation founded by him. Several national and international students have been deceived of money amounting to around Rs 3 crore on the pretext of fees for multipl e international youth exchange programs, that were never organised.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 663: Relating to the crowdfunding appeal on Ketto, Laxmi K, who works on climate action and was aware of prior allegations related to her fathers activities, initiated contact with Ketto requesting due diligence. Further concerns around the Ketto crowd funding drive was flagged by political activist Angellica Aribam, a day after Paojel Chaoba of The Frontier Manipur broke a story on 19 May on how the Ketto donation drive by the child activist could be a possible scheme to defraud peopl e by her father. In an email written to Varun Sheth of Ketto, Angellica asked whether the Noble Citizen Foundation, the agency that was being handed the money collected from the donation drive had any credibility and if Ketto was certain there were no connections with the child’s father. However, she never received any response.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 665: It is now widely accepted that both Licypriya and her father used deceitful methods to hog the limelight and generate favourable publicity. The father and the daughter were caught exaggerating their manipulated accompl ishments and using run-of-the-mill acknowledgements from reputed organisations to spin a web of lies around their achievement.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 679: “Our little girl Susan is a most admirable slut, and pl eases us mightily, doing more service than both the others and deserves the wages of sin better. There are a good many slut-holes in London to rake out.”
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 698: leben sie immer noch glücklich und zufrieden am Marktpl atz:
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 32:
Hentosudenkorento ja Jauhopukki play:none">{span style="color:white;background-color:green"}2022{/span} Evoluutiopsykologiaa
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 61: Maken mukaan lesbouden laadun voi päätellä vartalosta, leuasta ja jopa sormista. "Vastasin siihen lähinnä vitsinä, että olen metroseksuaali, en ole kiinnostunut suklaaosaston miähistä sillä lailla, mut ympäristöhoitajana lepakot kyllä kiinnostaa. Lepakot muuten syövät jauhopukkeja, ja hentosudenkorentoja myäs. Voisi kuvitella, että mentäs eteenpäin, kun ihmiset uskoo tieteeseen. On osa porukkaa, joka elää omassa kupl assaan. Musta mustamaalattiin joku pervo."
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 217: Ô toi, tous mes pl aisirs! ô toi, tous mes devoirs!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 296: Oh, thou all my pl easures, oh, thou all my prayers!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 326: Are they born in some gulf to our pl ummets denied?
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 336: — thou, all my pl easure, thou, my fealties all!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 366: shall they arise from gulfs too deep to pl umb,
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 377: You who were all my pl easures, all my hopes and dreams!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 388: How spl endid were the long slow summer sunsets, too!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 392: How spl endid were the long slow summer sunsets, too!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 415: Yourself are all my pl easure, all my duty;
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 426: How spl endid sets the sun of a warm evening!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 430: How spl endid sets the sun of a warm evening!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 441: Own source, your heart and body formed to pl ease.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 456: O you, all my pl easure, O you, all my duty!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 467: How spl endid the sunsets are on warm evenings!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 471: How spl endid the sunsets are on warm evenings!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 496: O you my every pl easure, you my every duty!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 498: The warm peace of our hearth, the evening's pl acid beauty.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 537: Of all my works and pl easures, you, the queen;
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 579: playphoto-shrink_200_200/0/1517607456093?e=1649289600&v=beta&t=uUKZLcXC3LMe7bctyMxzV2w5-Us0969pQWSUDfSHvuc" />
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 580: Edward Eriksson, Self-empl oyed from University of Iowa
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 588: Self-empl oyed Graphic Novelist, Voice-Over Artist, Self-empl oyed Tour Guide
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 637: Edward Eriksson writes novels, pl ays, and travel essays. This is his third novel, his others being "Moonbeam in My Pocket, a Mystery of the Negro League" and "Flamingo Desires," a crime story set on Long Island.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 641: If you're buying this trash for a class then you're a sucker, turn back now! Hopefully Edward isn't still teaching his own tasteless fan fiction in a college setting. It's a misunderstood teenager's journey through satire compl ete with crude, unoriginal and stereotypical takes on characters from the lens of a self insert hero amounting to little more than finger pointing. You'll be offended, sure, but with little substance left to interpret besides the authors very obvious discomfort with himself and others unlike him. (Make some new friends, Edward.) Beyond being ridiculous as a required reading piece for a class, actually paying for this garbage is insulting, and of course it is an absolute drag to slog through. Nobody's going to publish this except on demand printing obviously and that's why you're buying it from Amazon!!!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 682: Carol is a self movitaed person. Always pl easant and very deciated to her job. Karen Malewicz
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 686: Accompl ishments
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 703: Ghost of Tsushima is a video game. Its main characters never existed in real historical texts. Jin Sakai and his uncle, Lord Shimura, are compl etely fictional characters.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 710: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 725: Farrah Fawcett 70-luvun urheilullisessa uimapuvussa on niin last season. Killing me softly with her song, Oulun rotvallilla. Iso T ei todellakaan ollut lattana. Esimulkun T-paita ei ois mennyt sille. Valeskotti on nolona kun sen valtava Tokion asunto 22. kerroxessa on niin 70-lukua. Varmaan näytti samalta kuin Silverfishin paksusuolen sisäpintaa muistuttava huoneusto retapersevideolla. Rei lämmittää mikrossa pojille lihaperunalaatikon. Ize se nokkii jotain kexejä. Että Shag ilkeääkin olla sexistinen. Rei näytti varmaan Yoko Zunolta cospl ayunivormussa ja ilman.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 732: ploads.s3.amazonaws.com/image.oregonlive.com/home/olive-media/width2048/img/tv/photo/2018/04/13/24363811-large.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 738: Tonya Maxene Harding (born November 12, 1970) is an American former figure skater, retired boxer and a reality television personality. Born in Portland, Oregon, Harding was raised primarily by her mother, who enrolled her in ice skating lessons beginning at three years old. Harding spent much of her early life training, eventually dropping out of high school to devote her time to the sport. After climbing the ranks in the U.S. Figure Skating Championships between 1986 and 1989, Harding won the 1989 Skate America competition. She became the 1991 and 1994 U.S. champion and 1991 World silver medalist. In 1991, she earned the distinction of becoming the first American woman to successfully land a tripl e Axel in competition - and the second woman to do so in history (behind Midori Ito). Harding is a two-time Olympian and a two-time Skate America Champion.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 740: In January 1994, Harding became embroiled in controversy when her ex-husband, Jeff Gillooly, orchestrated an attack on her fellow U.S. skating rival Nancy Kerrigan. Both women then competed in the February 1994 Winter Olympics, where Kerrigan won the silver medal and Harding finished eighth. On March 16, 1994, Harding accepted a pl ea bargain in which she pl eaded guilty to conspiracy to hinder prosecution. As a result of her involvement in the aftermath of the assault on Kerrigan, the United States Figure Skating Association banned her for life on June 30, 1994, and stripped her bar the medals.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 742: From 2003 to 2004, Harding competed as a professional boxer. Her life has been the subject of many books, films, documentaries, and academic studies. In 2014, two television documentaries were made about Harding´s life and skating career (Nancy & Tonya and The Price of Gold), inspiring Steven Rogers to write the film I, Tonya in 2017, in which Harding was portrayed by Australian actress Margot Robbie. In 2018, she was a contestant on season 26 of Dancing with the Stars, finishing in third pl ace. In 2019, she won season 16 of Worst Cooks in America: Celebrity Edition.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 745: Answer to What does "onna" mean in Japanese? How is the word used? 女 “onna” means female as an antonym of 男 “otoko” (male). The female has a protruding belly. The male has two feet, a tail in front, and a territory in pl ace of head. If you go to a public bath in Japan, this Kanji character 女 shows you which bath room women should go in. Onna means 'bitch' ergo otoko means 'dog'.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 751: The novel features a passionate romance between Rei Shimura and Hugh Glendinning, the Scottish lawyer. Though the romance was not very realistic, I think it added an exciting and entertaining element to the novel. The first person point-of-view from which the novel is narrated allows the audience to truly understand the good and the bad of Rei’s character. She is independent to a fault but extremely loyal. She wants to immerse herself in Japanese culture, yet she rejects the social norms of society when they conflict with her desires. She is passionate about her interest in history and antiques, but logical by staying on as a teacher. The contradictions make her human and contribute to the reality of the novel. While mystery was not entirely believable, it was in no way predictable and I genuinely found the pl ot to be exciting. The Salaryman’s Wife, fits into the detective fiction tradition as most closely as a cozy, however the urban setting and the inclusion of graphic sex scenes contradict that classification
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 757: Suzy I agree with you entirely about the romance/relationship angle in this (and all her) books. I find the descriptions of life in Japan & art history engrossing, but the shift in to her personal life is shallow and inexpl icable. I frequently stare at those paragraphs wondering, what's Rei's problem, whats Massey's problem? Rei's choice of friends are also pretty bad.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 768: As I´ve said, this was written in 97, so the opinions are bound to be a little dated. However, THIS is 2014 and the impl ications (however unintentional) of the narrative in this book made me too uncomfortable to finish reading it.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 770: Lastly the main coupl es' relationship wasn't based on 'anything deeper', nor was it supposed to be. This is the first in a series so the relationship can develop, or not. Deeper deeper faster faster says faster Norie.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 773: The one stand-out annoyance for me was unexpectedly hitting upon yet another pl ot relying upon "rescuing" a female character from her sordid life of sex (or nearly-sex) work: hostessing, in this case. She's told she's "better" than that which means she should make less money doing something more honorable. It makes me want to write to the author and say she could do so much BETTER than write a book that hooks readers immediately with an erotically-charged story of sexual assault on a crowded train. I´m not mad at her, though, for giving the majority of readers what they want; just a pet peeve of mine.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 775: J. Condon liked her books that took pl ace in India and recommended the author to friends but this book was terrible. No pl ot, just lots of running around with drama. All of the characters behaved weirdly. May keep me from buying more books by her.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 779: Barry A. Hudson says: Good writing and a good introduction to Japanese culture. I note than some Japanese criticize her works, but my comment would be that Japanese culture never likes to air its dirty laundry. I find her cultural observations right on the mark. I actually think she has great love and admiration for Japan and its peopl e, but she occasionally does not pull her punches.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 784: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/61/085_Sujata_offers_Rice_%289189374231%29.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 795: She attended Johns Hopkins University, where she majored in Creative Writing and earned her BA in 1986. After graduating, she interned and was quickly hired as a reporter for the Baltimore Evening Sun. In 1991, she married Tony Massey, her college sweetheart, and the coupl e moved to Japan. Her husband was almost immediately depl oyed by the Navy, which left Mrs. Massey to acclimate to the culture alone. She worked as an English teacher while in Japan and began writing. In 1993, her husband’s depl oyment ended and the coupl e moved back to the States and settled in Baltimore, where they currently reside.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 28: Dichtung und Wahrheit play:none">Alternatiivista totuutta
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 44: Pili on helevetin amerikkaklisheinen. Motivaatiopuhujien puhekupl a.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 54: ple">
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 64: Peppu Colemanin hahmossa, se jutkunekru, oli yxi minuuden
pioneereista (italics in the original). Pienuuden minooreista. Minäminä yxilöpaskantelu on Rothin lemppareita. Sen se oli varmaan oppinut Emanuel James Rohnilta. Sen inhokkisanoja oli
me (suomexi, enkuxi sen mielisana oli sama) ja setelissäkin lukeva
e pl uribus unum. Annuit coeptis. Novus ordo saeclorum. The phrase is similar to a Latin translation of a variation of Heraclitus's tenth fragment, "The one is made up of all things, and all things issue from the one" (ἐκ πάντων ἓν καὶ ἐξ ἑνὸς πάντα). But it seems more likely that the phrase refers to Cicero's paraphrase of Pythagoras in his De Officiis, as part of his discussion of basic family and social bonds as the origin of societies and states: "When each person loves the other as much as himself, it makes one out of many (unum fiat ex Pluribus), as Pythagoras wishes things to be in friendship." Mikähän jeesus sekin luuli olevansa. Jenkkien peitesana izekkyydelle on vapaus.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 84: Many of his speeches are now available for free on social media
pl atforms like YouTube and Instagram.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 97: Kuvottava virnuileva hölöttäjä, iänikuisen saman jenkkipaskan hokija. Suittu silverback lookalike. Et voi muuttaa ympäristöä, muuta siis vaan izeäsi niin että lisäät markkina-arvoasi. Aloita jo tänään. Saarnaaja jonka jumala on mammona. Kuvituxena setelitukkuja ihastuneina selailevia nuoria. Jim paneutui jobiin nuorena, se meni päin persettä, kunnes se lopulta oivalsi että izensä sukiminen paskanjauhanta ja tyhmempien hö
pl äytys tuottaa paljon enemmän nopeammin ja vaivattomammin nappulaa. Ne jotka ei osaa opettaa. Ne jotka ei osaa sitäkään paasaa ja kynäilee viihdettä.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 105: Eker was born in Toronto, Ontario, Canada and lived there through his childhood. As a young adult, Eker moved to the United States and started a series of over a dozen different companies before having success with an early retail fitness store. After reportedly making millions through a chain of fitness stores and subsequently losing his fortune through mismanagement, Eker started analyzing the relationships rich peo
pl e have with their money and wealth, leading him to develop the theories he advances in his writing and speaking today.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 107: Eker’s writing and speaking often focus on his concept of the "Millionaire Mind," a collection of "mental attitudes that facilitate wealth." This theory proposes that we each possess a "financial blueprint," or an "internal script that dictates how we relate to money," and that by changing this blueprint peo
pl e can change their ability to accumulate wealth.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 109: Other theories attributed to Eker include the concept that peo
pl e unwilling to make major sacrifices in order to succeed "
pl ay the role" of the victim and deny that they have control of their own situations. Instead they should
pl ay the role of the perpetrator and take control of the victim. Another concept is that guilt prevents seeking wealth and that "thinking about wealth as a means to help others" relieves this guilt and enables wealth accumulation.[citation needed]. LOL.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 111: In his book, Eker lists 17 ways in which the financial blueprints of the rich differ from those of the poor and the middle-class. One theme identified in this list is that the rich discard limiting beliefs while the unsuccessful succumb to them. Eker argues that: Rich peo
pl e believe, "I create my life", while poor peo
pl e believe, "Life happens to me"; rich peo
pl e focus on opportunities while poor peo
pl e focus on obstacles; and rich peo
pl e admire other rich and successful peo
pl e whereas poor peo
pl e resent rich and successful peo
pl e.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 170: The Heisman Memorial Trophy (usually known colloquially as the Heisman Trophy or The Heisman) is awarded annually to the most outstanding
pl ayer in college football. Winners epitomize great ability combined with diligence, perseverance, and hard work.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 206: Wylie ap
pl ied engineering princi
pl es and the scientific method quite broadly in his work. His novel The Disappearance (1951) is about what happens when everyone suddenly finds that all members of the opposite sex are missing (all the men have to get along without women, and vice versa). The book delves into the double standards between men and women that existed prior the women's bowel movement of the 1970s, ex
pl oring the nature of the relationship between men and women and the issues of women's rights and homosexuality.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 208: Wylie's book of essays, Generation of Vipers (1942), was a best-seller during the 1940s and inspired the term "Momism" (excessive attachment to or domination by one's mother). Some peo
pl e have accused Generation of Vipers of being misogynistic. His only child, Karen Pryor, is the author of a classic book for breastfeeding mothers, Nursing Your Baby, and has commented that her father was far from being a misogynist. Wylie's daughter, Karen Pryor, is an author who became the inventor of animal "clicker" training. Wylie's niece Janice Wylie, the daughter of his brother Max Wylie, co-creator of The Flying Nun, was murdered, along with her roommate Emily Hoffert, in New York in August 1963, in what became known as the "Career Girls murders" case.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 217:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 221:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/9/99/WAMBAS_Baby_Stars_1932.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 224:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 231:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 232:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 237: painful blue (or pur
pl e) finger.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 276:
ply_0.4049%2C$ratio_1.777778%2C$width_1976%2C$x_12%2C$y_28/t_crop_custom/q_86%2Cf_auto/7a57e159c0f7229695c36dbf1345fcba2e62354f" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 277:
Caro Lllewellyn, another Faunia in 2009. "I want to see you again," he said as he took my hand and kissed my cheek. He had an endless suppl y of screwball wisecracks.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 280: When I was diagnosed with multi
pl e sclerosis, Philip came to the hospital and I called him a brave soldier. He sat on a
pl astic chair beside my bed and told more of his doctor and nurse jokes. I laughed despite myself. When the doctors came on their rounds after his first visit, I commanded a new respect. Word had spread and specialists who had previously answered my questions with no more than a dismissive wave of their hand were suddenly very attentive.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 286: About a year after my diagnosis, in 2010, Philip invited me to join him for weekends at his country home. After that he dropped me, as it was getting too hard for him to turn me on my back. I didn't want to use the clothes drier but hung my panties on a line. Philip joked that I was turning his home into a trailer park but never insisted I use the dryer. I didn't need to cook, Philip
pl anned where to eat and made the reservations. I used to like resting my ear on the hard metal of the im
pl anted defibrillator that sat just below the skin of his chest to treat dysrhythmia.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 287: This was the second defibrillator he'd had after the first had to be re
pl aced. Philip's original defibrillator had pride of
pl ace on the kitchen table. When he first handed it to me, I had no idea what it was and palmed the smooth metal disc in my hand. I almost dropped it when he started laughing and told me its original purpose. Over time, I came to appreciate it too and when I was alone in the kitchen, I often picked it up and held it in my hand. We called each other Toots. I found out Philip died when a friend called me at work. I swivelled around in my office chair and googled Philip Roth. There he was on the front page of The New York Times. Dead.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 289:
ply_2.2099%2C$ratio_1.777778%2C$width_362%2C$x_15%2C$y_0/t_crop_custom/q_86%2Cf_auto/f18dfc23332a7da1fad98c0e3e4f0d90972ba6cf" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 290:
Caro Lllewellyn with her next boss, Salman Rushdie, in 2010. "I want to see you again," he said as he took my hand and kissed my cheek. He had an endless suppl y of screwball wisecracks.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 294: Philip is buried at the Bard College Cemetery in upstate New York. He'd once considered "moving in" next to his parents at the Gomel Chesed Cemetery in Newark, New Jersey but there was no immediately close
pl ot and the
pl ace had fallen into disrepair and Philip liked things to be very neat. I was thrilled to hear that Philip orchestrated every last detail of his own farewell. I was not invited.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 295: All and any religious overtones were strictly forbidden. There were no speeches, only readings of excerpts he'd selected from his books ahead of time, and a violin recital by a friend's daughter. He knew no one – no matter how well they really knew him and the peo
pl e there at his graveside were his closest friends – could say it better than he could say it himself. Ingenting går opp mot kålpirog om hösten - som jag själv har lagat.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 28:
IDIOOTTI! play:none">Idiotiaa
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 166: Œuvres com
pl ètes (Paris: Gallimard)
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 184:
plIDIwMDB4MjAwMFx1MDAzZSJdXQ.jpg?sha=5781e3be575ea954" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 199: Ippolit is a 17-year-old boy who is dying of tuberculosis. An ardent nihilist, he yearns to be taken seriously and attempts to dramatically leave the world. He delivers rambling, self-absorbed, nihilistic speech entitled “A Necessary Ex
pl anation” to Myshkin, Nastasya, and Rogozhin, and many others at a party at Lebedev’s dacha. After this, he attempts to commit suicide by shooting himself with the gun he’s had since he was a child. This entire
pl an backfires, as everyone grows bored with his speech, and when it comes time to kill himself he fails to do so because there is no cap in the gun. After this incident, Ippolit’s illness shows progress and he eventually dies.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 202:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/eb/The_Body_of_the_Dead_Christ_in_the_Tomb%2C_and_a_detail%2C_by_Hans_Holbein_the_Younger.jpg/1000px-The_Body_of_the_Dead_Christ_in_the_Tomb%2C_and_a_detail%2C_by_Hans_Holbein_the_Younger.jpg
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 206: As the beginning of the conclusion shows, the end to the novel can hardly be considered a happy one. In most cases, whatever positive transformations the characters underwent through their friendship with Myshkin unravel, either because they were unable to sustain the wisdom they learned from him or because they were so traumatized by the cruel absurdity of their life that they are reduced to a state of hel
pl essness.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 214: (1) Ippolit starts reading "My Necessary Ex
pl anation," which is rambling, doesn´t have much of a logical flow, and goes on for several chapters.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 225: (5) Ippolit is furious at the peo
pl e he sees around him, each living life and having a lot of life to live. How could they be com
pl aining about anything? If only he could have the rest of his life in front of him, then he'd really show everyone.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 329: ‘The Eve of St. Agnes’ begins with the setting, the eve of the Feast of St. Agnes, January 20th (the Feast is celebrated on the 21st). It is horribly cold outside. A Beadsman, a professional man of prayer, is freezing in his church. He briefly hears music from the house that the church abuts. They are preparing a celebration and the guests all arrive in a burst of expensive clothing and
pl umage.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 333: Farther away from the castle a man, Porphyro, who loves Madeline more than anything, is making his way to the house. He enters, unseen. If anyone finds him he knows that he will be killed. Madeline’s family hates him and holds his lineage against him. While sneaking through the house he comes upon Angela, one of the servants. He begs her to bring him to Madeline’s chamber so that he might show himself to her that night and solidify himself as her true love. After much com
pl aining, she agrees and hides him until it is time.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 335: When Madeline finally enters the room, undresses, and falls to sleep, Porphyro is watching her. When he decides that she has fallen com
pl etely asleep he makes his approach and wakes her with the
pl aying of a flute. She is ripped from a dream in which she was with a heavenly, more beautiful version of Porphyro and is aghast when she sees the real one. She believes for a moment that he is close to death.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 394: With
pl ume, tiara, and all rich array, Sulat päässä, tiara ja ties mitä muuta,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 441: Buttress’d from moonlight, stands he, and im
pl ores Se seisoo oven takana ja rukoilee pyhimyxiä
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 466: Saying, “Mercy, Porphyro! hie thee from this
pl ace; Sanoen: Terse, Porfyyri! Antaa vetää täältä!
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 482: Brushing the cobwebs with his lofty
pl ume; Hämähäkit huiski tukkaan paneelista,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 498: “God’s help! my lady fair the conjuror
pl ays Jumalauta! Mun leidi leikkii Tarvajärveä
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 516: Made pur
pl e riot: then doth he propose Kun se kekkaa sotajuonen, josta ämmyrkäisen
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 528: “If one of her soft ringlets I dis
pl ace, Tukkaa silitän, en merta edemmäxi kalalle
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 540: “Were never miss’d.”—Thus
pl aining, doth she bring Rukous sun pään menoxi! Tän kuultuaan
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 576: Where Porphyro took covert,
pl eas’d amain. Porfyyri panee munaa piiloon kohdakkoin,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 602: A casement high and tri
pl e-arch’d there was, Roger Casement oli siellä huoneessa,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 606: Innumerable of stains and s
pl endid dyes, Hienoja värejä ja kaikenlaista muuta huvia,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 619: She seem’d a s
pl endid angel, newly drest, Se näytti enkeliltä puettuna hajuveteen.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 636: In sort of wakeful swoon, per
pl ex’d she lay, Puolivalveilla se on ja vähän takussa,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 671: Of candied ap
pl e, quince, and
pl um, and gourd; ruveta jo häärimään mamman takana?
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 703: He
pl ay’d an ancient ditty, long since mute, Se tarttuu Melusiinan ontton soittimeen,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 728: “Those looks immortal, those com
pl ainings dear! "Ootpa Porfyro sä kauheen kalvakka!
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 816: Prof. Stefan Hawlin, Department of English, Chandos Building, University of Buckingham, selittää ton Merlin kohdan Keazin runossa. Perhaps a reference to Spenser's Faerie Queene, Book III, Canto III.7-11? Demoni ois se Lady in the Lake, ja Merlinin velka ois pussillinen siimahäntiä? Tai size on Maloryn Morte d'Arthurista, josta Keazilla oli oma kopio. Oisko se demoni ehkä Merlinin oma iskä, joka oli incubus? Sitä Stefu ehdottaa: Merlin oli paholaisen poika, jonka paholainen siitti kieron kautta, mutta äiti ja Blaise risti Merlinin heti kehdossa, ja vihtahousun juoni oli pilalla. No missä mielessä sit Merlin maxo kehnon velan takaisin? No auttamalla Utherin Igrainen pukille, josta siittyi anti-anti-kristus Artturi. Aika kom
pl isoitua. Spenserin Keijukuningatar on vähän liian pitkä tähän, 36K jaetta ja 4000 värssyä.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 821: Dostoon liittyvien kliseiden viidakossa alkoi kiinnostaa mixi Ippolitin välttämätön selitys (s. 597/954) entitled “A Necessary Ex
pl anation” to Myshkin, Nastasya, and Rogozhin, and many others at a party at Lebedev’s dacha. oli jenkkioppaan mielestä 'rambling, self-absorbed, nihilistic speech'.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 847: Qu'ils meurent
pl eins de jours, Kuolkoot täynnä päiviä,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 848: Que leur mort soit
pl eurée, Vollattakoon niiden kuolemaa,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 910: La
pl ace où je serai demain. Kalsa skrubu mihkä mut kohta slepataan.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 913: Venait
pl eurer quand le jour fuit, Iltasella vähän itkeskelemään
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 937: Mais que d’amis, sourds à ma voix
pl aintive, Mut et mun kamut, kuurona mun valituxille,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 952: Telle etait la
pl ainte d’Hégésippe Moreau, alors que Gilbert avait écrit avant lui:
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 959: Nul ne viendra verser des
pl eurs. Ei kukaan tule valuttamaan kyyneleitä.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 968: Qu’ils meurent
pl eins de jours, que leur mort soit
pl eurée, Kuolkoot täynnä päiviä, siitä tulkoon itkua,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 977: Il a vu mes
pl eurs pénitents; Hää näki mun katumuxen itkut;
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 986: ‘A tes
pl us chers amis ils ont prêté leur rage. Ne lainasi sun parhailta kavereilta vihansa:
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 987: Tout trompe ta sim
pl icité: Sun simppeliys pettää kaikki:
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1009: Nul ne viendra verser des
pl eurs. Mun hauvalle ei tuu kukaan itkemään.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1018: Qu’ils meurent
pl eins de jours, que leur mort soit
pl eurée, Kunpa kuolisivat niinkuin mä, ja niitä vollattais,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1023:
Nicolas Joseph Florent Gilbert , né le 15 décembre 1750 dans le sud du duché de Lorraine à Fontenoy-le-Château et mort le 16 novembre 1780 à Paris, est un poète lorrain francophone. Son père, maire de Fontenoy-le-Château, propriétaire de deux fermes, y exerce le métier de marchand de grains. Son éducation est confiée au curé du village, un jésuite qui, voyant en lui « un esprit apte à être éduqué », lui apprend le latin. Puis le jeune Nicolas part faire ses humanités au collège de l'Arc à Dole. Après 1770, il part pour Paris, avec en poche ses premiers vers, ainsi qu’une lettre, signée de Mme de La Verpillière, femme du prévôt des marchands de Lyon et mécène. Cette lettre recommande le jeune poète à D’Alembert. Il semble que D’Alembert, lui ayant promis une
pl ace de précepteur, n’honore pas cette espérance, et le reçoit d’ailleurs assez froidement. Gilbert s'en souviendra quand il composera sa satire du Dix-huitième siècle :
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1033: Quelques mois avant sa mort, il écrit une Ode imitée de
pl usieurs psaumes,
pl us généralement connue sous le nom d'Adieux à la vie, un poème dont la thématique pré-romantique sera reprise par Alfred de Vigny dans Stello et Chatterton (voir ci-dessus).
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1035:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a3/AP-2114.jpg/1024px-AP-2114.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1038: Eise mitään kuollut köyhänä ja kirottuna, vaan mukavasti eläkkeellä, ja testamenttas vielä loput rahat Bernadottelle. Elämälle heippa, sain siltä paljon. Sensijaan Thomas Chatterton, joka oli se Rowleyhuijari joka mainittiin Keazin yhteydessä kai, kuoli nälkäisenä arsenikkiin 17-vuotiaana. Thomas Chatterton, né le 20 novembre 1752 à Bristol et mort le 24 août 1770 à Holborn, est un poète et mystificateur anglais. Ayant attribué ses œuvres à un moine médiéval du nom de « Rowley », il fut accusé à tort d’être un faussaire par certains de ses contemporains les
pl us influents. Il est reconnu comme un poète de talent, malgré sa mort à l'âge de 17 ans, ayant préféré se suicider à l’arsenic
pl utôt que de mourir de faim, devenant ainsi pour les romantiques le symbole de l’homme de génie non reconnu.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1061: Uskonto! Myönnän iankaikkisen elämän olemassaolon ja kenties olen aina myöntänyt sen (koska se on kivaa). Olkoon niin että korkeimman (tai lähes korkeimman) voiman tahto on sytyttänyt tietoisuuden kuin tupakkamies tulzarin, olkoon niin että tietoisuus on katsahtanut ympärilleen maailmassa ja sanonut: "Hei mut mähän olen mä!" ja olkoonpa, että tuo noin korkein voima on yhtäkkiä määrännyt sen häviämään, koska se jostakin syystä ois kivaa, vaikka ilman selitystä miksi - olkoon näin, minä myönnän kaiken tämän, mutta taaskin herää ikuinen kysymys: mihin tässä tarvitaan minun nöyryyttäni? Eikö minua tosiaankaan voida syödä mutkattomasti, vaatimatta minulta että ylistäisin sitä joka minut syö? Mahtaako siellä tosiaankin joku loukkaantua siitä, että minä en halua odottaa kahta viikkoa? En usko sitä; ja on paljon oikeaan osuvampaa otaksua, että tässä on pelkästään tarvittu minun vähäpätöistä elämääni, atomin elämää, jonkin kokonaisuuden yleisen harmonian täydennykseksi, jotakin
pl ussaa ja miinusta varten, jonkin vastakohtaisuuden vuoksi ja niin edelleen, ja niin edelleen, aivan samoin kuin joka päivä tarvitaan uhriksi monien elävien olentojen elämä, koska muu maailma ei ilman niiden kuolemaa pysyisi pystyssä (vaikka onkin huomautettava, ettei tämä itsessään ole kovin ylevä ajatus). Olkoon niin! Minä myönnän, että muulla tavoin, toisin sanoen ilman että kaikki yhtä mittaa syövät toisiaan, ei maailmaa olisi voitu mitenkään rakentaa; olen valmis myöntämään myös sen, etten ymmärrä mitään sen rakenteesta; mutta seuraavan asian minä tiedän varmasti: jos minulle kerran on annettu tietoisuus siitä että "mäkin tässä olen", niin mitä minua liikuttaa se, että maailma on rakennettu erehdysten varaan ja että muulla tavoin se ei voi pysyä pystyssä? Kuka minua voi tämän jälkeen tuomita ja mistä? Niin tai näin, kaikki tämä on mahdotonta ja epistä. Taas tätä iänikuista teodikeaa. Täytyy olla typerys että jaxaa sitä jauhaa aina vaan. Kevorkian kyllä ymmärtäisi Ippolittia.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1073:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ef/Lacenaire.jpg/260px-Lacenaire.jpg" style="width:100%" />
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1082: Assassin romantique (beaucoup de femmes assistent au procès), il avoue tout avec cynisme et désinvolture et im
pl ique ses deux com
pl ices Avril et François, considérant qu'ils l'ont dénoncé et que tous les trois méritent la mort. Son avocat commis d'office, Maitre Brochant de Villiers,
pl aide la folie, en vain.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1083: "Je tue un homme comme je bois un verre de vin.» Il rédige ses Mémoires et
pl usieurs poèmes qui contribueront à faire naître le mythe du dandy assassin et voleur.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1103: Du sup
pl ice encor mal lavée. Kehnosti pestyä kipupistettä.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1117: Ont dans les
pl is de cette peau, On tämän nahan poimuihin
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1147: Manfred est un drame en vers de George Gordon Byron, dit Lord Byron, publié en 1817. Bourrelé de remords après avoir tué celle qu'il aimait, Manfred vit seul comme un maudit au cœur des Alpes. Il invoque les esprits de l'univers, et ceux-ci lui offrent tout, excepté la seule chose qu'il désire, l'oubli. Il essaie alors, mais en vain, de se jeter du haut d'un pic élevé. Il visite ensuite la demeure d'Ahriam, mais refuse de se soumettre aux esprits du mal, leur enjoignant d'évoquer les morts. Enfin lui apparaît Astarté, la femme qu'il a aimée puis tuée par son étreinte (« My embrace was fatal... I loved her and destroy'd her »). Répondant à son invocation, Astarté lui annonce sa mort pour le lendemain. Au moment prédit apparaissent des démons pour s'emparer de lui, mais Manfred leur dénie tout pouvoir sur sa personne. Pourtant, à peine sont-ils apparus qu'il meurt. La situation de Manfred deviendra l'un des poncifs favoris composant le portrait de l'homme fatal du romantisme. Cette pièce s'inspire, pense-t-on[Qui ?], dans son
pl an, du Faust de Goethe et selon certains, contiendrait une allusion du poète à sa demi-sœur Augusta Leigh. Sitäkin se dodennäköisesti bylsähti.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1199: Sire, cédezmoi votre
pl ace. Herra, luovuttakaa mulle paikkanne.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1205: Doston typerä jatkosarja jossain viikkolehdessä. Doston oli jo ollut lusimassa Siperiassa. Suht palasina se sieltä palasi. He
pl anned to ex
pl ore the moral and psychological dangers of the ideology of "radicalism", and felt that the project would appeal to the conservative publisher Katkov.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1207: Raskolnikov oli lätkässä pikkusiskoonsa mutta impotentti. Lisäxi se pyörtyileee koko ajan kuin joku neizykäinen. Isosieraimista Sonjaa pitää pystyssä vain Jumala. Tää Sonja on eri kuin se pikkusisko Dunja. Sonjan mielipätkä Raamatussa on se "Herra hän haisee jo". Sonja traumatisoituu kun sen mekosta löytyy sataru
pl anen. Näkyy että Dostolla oli rahahuolia.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1214: He stops at Sonya's
pl ace on the way and she gives him a crucifix. At the bureau he learns of Svidrigailov's suicide, and almost changes his mind, even leaving the building. But he sees Sonya, who has followed him, looking at him in despair, and he returns to make a full and frank confession of the murders. What the fuck.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 33:
WORLD HOORAY DAY play:none">Uraata
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 49: November 21, 2021 is the 49th annual World Hooray Day. Anyone can participate in World Hooray Day sim
pl y by starving ten countries and threatening them with dire consequences if they don't behave (= humor us). This demonstrates the importance of military communications for securing peas. World Hooray Day was a response to the successful conflict between Egypt and Israel in the Fall of 1973. Since then, World Hooray Day has been observed by Sionistic peo
pl e in 180 countries.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 56: Pro-Israeli peo
pl e around the world use the occasion of World Hooray Day as an opportunity to express their yearning for canned peas. Beginning with the sim
pl e but effective shooting on the 1st World Hooray Day 1973, their activities send a message to leaders, encouraging them to use economic sanction and then force to settle conflicts. The official sponsor of the World Hooray Day is Prof. Emeritus Arto Mustajoki, Juupajoki. His home town used to be called Eipäjoki (Nosir river), but thanx to Arto's persistent efforts to increase international understanding, the name has been changed to the more communicative Juupajoki "Yessir river".
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 58: As a global event World Hooray Day joins local participation in a global extortion of peas. The World Hooray Day web site address is
http://www.worldhelloday.org . The 70M winners of the 1939-45 shared Nobel Rest in Peace Prize are among the peo
pl e who have realized World Hooray Day's value as an instrument for purloining peas and as an occasion that makes it possible for anyone in the world to contribute to the process of s
pl itting third party peas and join the bunch of happy sinners who were the luckiest 6M winners of the prize. Join now, you may already have won!
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 64: In the fall of his senior year, while his fellow students immersed themselves in writing theses, ap
pl ying to graduate schools or kicking back and enjoying the good life, Michael J. McCormack '74 was busy starting another brain holiday. McCormack says he and his brother Brian McCormack wanted to do something to celebrate to the highly successful 1973 Arab-Israeli conflict.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 68: "We wanted to do something to celebrate the crushing victory of our arms and the Israeli ground forces,
pl us the importance of military communications in forcing the ragheads to eat their peas a second time," McCormack says.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 73: Every November 21, the brothers incite peo
pl e all over the world to take part in the celebration by saying "Hooray" to another 10 peo
pl e. Its really cheap! No postage needed! McCormack himself can say "Hooray" in over 65 different languages, including Bantu, Inuit and Urdu. He can say "We won" in just two languages, American English and Hebrew, and "Haha you fuckers lost" in four, German, Arabic, Russian, and French.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 75: Pro-Israeli peo
pl e in 179 countries have celebrated the holiday, and McCormack has received written support from
almost 100 authors, entertainers, Nobel Prize winners and world leaders. But it is proved hard to find peo
pl e who are authors, entertaineers, Nobel Prize winners and world leaders all at once. So far, only Ronald Reagan and Donald Trump have qualified. 98 to go, says Michael optimistically.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 77: "Whenever I have a tough night, I just remember that I've been in personal contact (
pirsuna pirsunalmente ) with 1.1 billion peo
pl e in the Republic of China, and that makes things easier," McCormack says. When he's not sending letters out across the world, McCormack spends his time writing and acting in professional pornographic productions.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 79: He recently co-wrote Farewell to Arms, an interactive
pl ay about a high school reunion in which every member of the audience gets a seismic orgasm under a tree.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 81: "We're selling out like crazy," McCormack says, meaning that he is searching for investors to take the show national. "We are actually
pl anning another World Sellout Day to celebrate our dedication to the U.S. cause." Make America Great Again. I mean greater, it was always great, and is, of course. Don't try to trick me.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 86: The editor of the first-year literary magazine and a writer for the Lampoon, a semi-secret Sorrento Square organization that occasionally publishes a so-called humor magazine, McCormack says his writing experiences during college sim
pl y confirmed his future
pl ans. "I was headed where I was headed and [Harvard] was the mosta humorous
pl ace to be along the way," he says.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 89: "You realize that these peo
pl e are as simian as you are," he says. "If they can go out and do something wonderful, then, a fortiori, you can go out and do something wonderful.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 100: McCormack has recently been accepted to the University of California at Los Angeles pornographic film school; he and his silicon wife will be moving from Nebraska to Los Angeles in the fall. He says he is eager to begin erecting and also has future
pl ans to break into film as a character actor. McCormack, who someday hopes to develop some of his (well, his, Mahatma's and Hemingway's) novels into movies, says he has waited to go to Hollywood until the time felt right and he had paid his dues.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 107: For ten years, Savilino has been creating artisan leather goods meant to be sim
pl e, beautiful, and durable. Now, as Harvard returns to regular campus life, they have created custom totes meant to become an everyday necessity.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 116:
The Yom Kippur War , also known as the Ramadan War, the October Revolution, the 1973 Arab–Israeli War or the Fourth Arab–Israeli War, was an armed conflict fought from 6 to 25 October 1973 between Israel and a coalition of Arab states led by Egypt and Syria. The majority of combat between the two sides took
pl ace in the Sinai Peninsula and the Golan Heights — both of which were illegally occupied by Israel in 1967, and still are — with some fighting in African Egypt and northern Israel. Egypt's initial objective in the war was to seize a foothold on the eastern bank of the Suez Canal and subsequently leverage these gains to negotiate the return of the rest of the Israeli-occupied Sinai Peninsula.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 118: Following the outbreak of hostilities, both the United States and the Soviet Union initiated massive resup
pl y efforts to their respective allies during the war, which led to a near-confrontation between the two nuclear-armed superpowers. After the 1967 six day war, the Egyptians said that a lasting peace could not be achieved without "withdrawal of the Israeli armed forces from all the territories occupied since 5 June 1967."
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 120: Golda Meir reacted to the overture by forming a committee to examine the proposal and vet possible concessions. When the committee unanimously concluded that Israel's interests would be served by full withdrawal to the internationally recognized lines dividing Israel from Egypt and Syria, returning the Gaza Strip and, in a majority view, returning most of the West Bank and East Jerusalem, Meir was angered and shelved the document next to her stash of knotted french letters and Joshua's foreskin collection. The United States was infuriated by the cool Israeli response to Egypt's proposal, and Joseph Sisco informed Yitzhak Rabin that "Israel would be regarded responsible for rejecting the best opportunity to reach peace since the establishment of the state." Israel responded to Jarring's
pl an also on February 26 by outlining its readiness to make some form of withdrawal, say in some New York bank, while declaring it had no intention of returning to the pre-June 5, 1967 lines.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 122: The US considered Israel an ally in the Cold War and had been sup
pl ying the Israeli military since the 1960s. Henry Kissinger believed that the regional balance of power hinged on maintaining Israel's military dominance over Arab countries, and that an Arab victory in the region would strengthen Soviet influence. Britain's position, on the other hand, was that war between the Arabs and Israelis could only be prevented by the im
pl ementation of United Nations Security Council Resolution 242 and a return to the pre-1967 boundaries. Fucking pudding heads.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 126: Other developed nations [who? were there any?], being more dependent on OPEC oil, took more seriously the threat of an Arab oil embargo and trade boycott, and had stopped sup
pl ying Israel with munitions. As a result, Israel was totally dependent on the United States for military resup
pl y, and particularly sensitive to anything that might endanger that relationship. After Meir had made her decision, at 10:15 am, she met with American ambassador Kenneth Keating in order to inform the United States that Israel did not intend to preemptively start a war. It would be just an accident. An electronic telegram with Keating's report on the meeting was sent to the United States at 16:33 GMT (6:33 pm local time). A message arrived later from United States Secretary of State Henry Kissinger saying, "Don't preempt." At the same time, Kissinger also urged the Soviets to use their influence to prevent war, contacted Egypt with Israel's message of non-preemption, and sent messages to other Arab governments to enlist their help on the side of moderation. These late efforts were futile. According to Henry Kissinger, had Israel struck first, it would not have received "so much as a nail".
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 128: The Soviets started an airlift of arms to Syria and Egypt. The American global interest was to prove that Soviet arms could not dictate the outcome of the fighting, by sup
pl ying Israel. Kenneth Pollack is a Jew so I would not trust his accounts of the war events. Saad el Shazly was on the other side, so hardly more trustworthy as a witness. Pientä epäselvyyttä oliko Egyptin 3. armeijakunta oikeasti aivan motissa, vai oliko mukana ehkä Kissingerin juonittelua, eze saisi kunnian Israelin pysäytyxestä ja tällä lailla Egyptin lipsumaan jenkkipuolelle. Mikä sitten ajan kanssa onnistuikin.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 157: 12. I believe with a com
pl ete faith in the coming of the Messiah; and even though he tarry, nevertheless I await him everyday that he should come.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 159: 13. I believe with a com
pl ete faith that there will be resurrection of the dead at a time when the will will arise from the Creator, blessed be His name, and may His remembrance be exalted for all eternity.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 161: Tää oli Moshelta hyvä veto sikäli että nää lisäyxet päihittää kristinuskon tärkeimmät vetolaastarit, lunastuskaupan luottokortin ja taivastoivon. Maimonides further ex
pl ains in his work on the Halakhic code, the Yad haHazaqa (“The Strong Hand”), also known as the Mishne Torah (Second Torah) the view of redemption and the role Messiah will
pl ay. Maimonides summarizes the Jewish expectation of the Messiah. But the expectation of Messiah, is not limited to Maimonides comments, quotes from the Talmud, Targum, Midrash, Zohar and other writings give us a vivid picture of the expectation in the Jewish world of the times of Messiah. Messianic expectation in Rabbinic times (A.D.135-1750) and in the time of Yeshua may have changed over the years. For exam
pl e in the time of Yeshua, The Tem
pl e existed and Israel was not scattered abroad as is the case today. In the days of Maimonides, there was no Israel and no Tem
pl e, and Jews were persecuted in Europe. Here we quote from Raphael Patai’s work, The Messiah Texts on pages 322-327, his translation of the Mishne Torah, Maimonides writes the following.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 163: King Messiah will arise in the future and will restore the kingship of David to its ancient condition, to its rule as it was at first. And he will rebuild the Tem
pl e and gather the exiled of Israel. And in his days all the laws will return as they were in the past. They will offer up sacrifices, and will observe the Sabbatical years and the jubilee years with regard to all the commandments stated in the Torah. And he who does not believe in him, or he who does not await his coming, denies not only the [other] prophets, but also the Torah and Moses our Master. For, behold, the Torah testifies about him [the Messiah], as it is written,
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 165: The Lord will return your captivity and have compassion upon thee, and will return and gather thee from all the peo
pl es whiter the Lord thy God hath scattered thee. If any of thine that are dispersed be in the uttermost parts of heaven, from thence will the Lord thy God will bring thee into the land which thy fathers possessed, and thou shalt possess it (Deut. 30:3-5)
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 167: And these are things which are ex
pl icitly stated in the Torah, and they comprise all the things which are said by the prophets. Even in the section “Balaam” it is said and there he prophesied about the two Messiahs: about the first Messiah who was David who saved Israel from the from the hands of its enemies, and about the last Messiah, who will arise from among David’s children and who will save Israel at the End. And there he says:
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 173: And if there should arise from the House of David a king, who studies the Torah and occupies himself with the commandments as his father David had, according to the written and oral Torah; and if he forces all Israel to follow the Torah and observe its rules; and if he fights the wars of the Lord—then he must be presumed be the Messiah. And if he succeeds in his acts, and rebuilds the Tem
pl e in its
pl ace, and gathers the exiled of Israel—then he certainly is the Messiah. And he will repair the whole world to serve the Lord together, as it is written, For then will I turn to the peo
pl es a pure language that they may call upon the name of the Lord to serve Him with one consent (Zeph. 3:9)
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 175: It should not come to one’s mind that in the days of the Messiah anything in the customary order of the world will be annulled, or that there will be something new in the order of Creation. For the world will continue in its path. And that which Isaiah said, the wolf shall dwell with the lamb, and the leopard shall lie down with the kid (Isa. 11:6), is but an allegory and a riddle. The true meaning of it is that Israel will dwell in safety with the wicked of the idolaters who are likened to a wolf and a leopard….And all of them will return to faith of truth, and they will neither rob nor despoil, but will eat the things which are permitted, in
pl easure, together with Israel, as it is written, The lion shall eat straw like the ox (Isa. 11:7). And likewise, all the similar things said about the Messiah are but allegories. And in the days of the Messiah it will become known to everybody what thing the allegory signified and to what thing it alluded.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 177: The sages said that the only difference between this world and the days of the Messiah will be with regard to the enslavement to the kingdoms. It appears from the
pl ain meaning of the words of the prophets that at the beginning of the days of the Messiah, there will be the war of Gog and Magog. And that prior to the war of Gog and Magog, a prophet will arise to straighten Israel and prepare their hearts, as it is written, Behold, I will send to you Elijah the prophet before the coming of the great and terrible day of the Lord (Mal. 4:5) And he will come not to declare the pure impure, or the impure pure; not to declare unfit those who are presumed to be fit, nor to declare fit those who are held to be unfit; but for the sake of peace in the world….And there are those among the sages who say that prior to the coming of the Messiah will come Elijah. But all these things and their likes, no man can know how they will be until they will be. For they are indistinct in the writings of the prophets. Neither do the sages have a tradition about these things. It is rather, a matter of interpretation of the Biblical verses. Therefore there is a disagreement among them regarding these matters. And in any case, these are mere details which are not of the essence of the faith. And one should definitely not occupy oneself with the matter of legends, and should not expatiate about the midrashim that deal with these and similar things. And one should not make essentials out of them. For they lead neither to fear nor to love [of God]. Neither should one calculate the End. The sages said, “May the spirit of those who calculate the End be blown away” But let him wait and believe in the matter generally, as we have ex
pl ained.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 193: 10 And I will pour on the house of David and on the inhabitants of Jerusalem the Spirit of grace and sup
pl ication; then they will look on Me whom they pierced. Yes, they will mourn for Him as one mourns for his only son, and grieve for Him as one grieves for a firstborn. Zechariah 12:9-10
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 209: The fifth house [in the heavenly Paradise] is built of onyx and jasper stones, and inlaid stones, and silver and gold, and good pure gold. And around it are rivers of balsam, and before its door flows the River Gihon. And [it has] a canopy of all trees of incense and good scent. And[in it are] beds of gold and silver, and embroidered garments. And there sits Messiah ben David and Elijah and Messiah ben Ephraim. And there is a canopy of incense trees as in the Sanctuary which Moses made in the desert. And all its vessels and pillars are of silver, its covering is gold, its seat is pur
pl e. And in it is Messiah ben David who loves Jerusalem. Elijah of blessed memory takes hold of his head,
pl aces it in his lap and holds it, and says to him: “Endure the sufferings and the sentence of your Master who makes you suffer because of the sin of Israel.” And thus it is written; He was wounded because of our transgressions, he was crushed because of our iniquities (Isaiah 53:5) until the time when the comes. (“Midrash Konen” BhM 2:29-30)[13]
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 222: Today, the Jews every year commemorate the wait for Elijah at the Passover Seder meal; he is welcomed in every Jewish home with a large goblet of wine
pl aced in the middle of the festive table for him. If he doesn't come, the guests present gobble the wine. According to some traditions there is a 45 day period following the death of Messiah Ben Joseph, before and the appearance of Messiah Ben David, its during this period, Elijah the forerunner of the Messiah makes his appearance.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 224: Elijah said to Rav Y’huda the brother of Rav Sala the Pious: “The world will exist for no less than eighty-five jubilees [that is, 85*50 = 4250 years], and in the last jubilee the Son of David will come.” He asked him: “In its beginning or at its end?” He answered: “I do not know.” [Rav Y’huda then asked:] “Will it [the last jubilee] be com
pl ete or not?” He said to him: “I do not know.” Rav Ashi said; “This is what Elijah told him; ‘Until the last jubilee expect him not; from then on expect him.’” So no hurry, there's another 260 jubilees (1300 years) or thereabouts to go. Babylonian Talmud Sanhedrin 97b[14]
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 226: At that time Michael the great [celestial] prince will rise and blow the shofar three times…and Messiah ben David and Elijah will be revealed. And the two of them will go to Israel who will be [at that time] in the desert of the peo
pl es, and Elijah will say to them; “This is the Messiah.” And he will return their heart [which will be faint] and will strengthen their hand… (T’fillat R. Shim’on ben Yohai, BhM 2:125)[15],[16]
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 232: 2 "Son of man, set your face against Gog, of the land of Magog, the prince of Rosh, Meshech, and Tubal, and prophesy against him, 3 "and say, 'Thus says the Lord God: "Behold, I am against you, O Gog, the prince of Rosh, Meshech, and Tubal.11 to take
pl under and to take booty, to stretch out your hand against the waste
pl aces that are again inhabited, and against a peo
pl e gathered from the nations, who have acquired livestock and goods, who dwell in the midst of the land. 23 "Thus I will magnify Myself and sanctify Myself, and I will be known in the eyes of many nations. Then they shall know that I am the Lord." ' Ezekiel 38:2,3,11,23
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 238: Behold I will make Jerusalem a cup of staggering unto all the peo
pl es round about (Zech. 12:2). What is “cup of staggering”? [It means] that He will in the future make peo
pl es drink the cup of staggering of blood….when they [Gog and Magog] go up there, what do they? They assign two warriors to every one of the Children of Israel. Why? So that they should not escape. When the heroes of Judah ascend and reach Jerusalem, they pray in their heart…In that hour the Holy One, blessed be He, gives heroism to Judah and they draw their weapons and smite those men on their right and on their left, and slay them (Midrash Tehillim, Psalm 119, ed. Buber pp. 488-89)
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 246: 23 "Thus he said: 'The fourth beast shall be A fourth kingdom on earth, Which shall be different from all other kingdoms, And shall devour the whole earth, Tram
pl e it and break it in pieces. 24 The ten horns are ten kings Who shall arise from this kingdom. And another shall rise after them; He shall be different from the first ones, And shall subdue three kings. 25 He shall speak pompous words against the Most High, Shall persecute the saints of the Most High, And shall intend to change times and law. Then the saints shall be given into his hand For a time and times and half a time. 26 'But the court shall be seated, And they shall take away his dominion, To consume and destroy it forever. Daniel 7: 23-26
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 248: And when the days of the Messiah arrive, Gog and Magog will come up against the Lord of Israel, because they will hear that Israel is without a king and sits in safety. Instantly they will take with them seventy-one nations and go up to Jerusalem, and they will say; “Pharaoh was a fool to command that the males [of the Israelites] be killed and to let the females live. Balaam was an idiot that he wanted to curse them and did not know that their God had blessed them. Haman was insane in that he wanted to kill them, and he did not know their God can save them. I shall not do as they did, but shall fight against their God first, and thereafter I shall slay them…” And the Holy One, blessed be He, will say to him; “You wicked one! You want to wage war against Me? By your life, I shall wage war against you! Instantly the Holy One, blessed be He will cause hailstones, which are hidden in the firmament, to descend upon him, and will bring upon him a great
pl ague… And after him will arise another king, wicked and insolent, and he will wage war against Israel for three months, and his name is Armilus. And these are his marks; he will be bald, one his eyes will be small, the other big. His right arm will be only as long as a hand…..And he will go up to Jerusalem and will slay Messiah ben Joseph…. And thereafter will come Messiah ben David….And he will kill the wick Armilus…And thereafter the Holy One, blessed be He, will gather all Israel who are dispersed here and there. (Midrash waYosha[19])
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 252: The Hebrew Bible and rabbinical writing both teach the Messiah will come upon the clouds in the end of days to rescue his peo
pl e from the nations.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 254: 13 I was watching in the night visions, And behold, One like the Son of Man, Coming with the clouds of heaven! He came to the Ancient of Days, And they brought Him near before Him. 14 Then to Him was given dominion and glory and a kingdom, That all peo
pl es, nations, and languages should serve Him. His dominion is an everlasting dominion, Which shall not pass away, And His kingdom the one Which shall not be destroyed. Daniel 7:14-14
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 256: R. Alexandri said: “R. Y’hoshua’a ben Levi ex
pl ained: ‘If they will be righteous, [the Messiah will come] on the clouds of heaven (Daniel 7:13); if they will not be righteous, [he will come] as a poor man riding upon an ass (Zech. 9:9)….King Shabur [Sapur] said to Sh’muel: “You say that the Messiah will come upon an ass; I shall send him a well-groomed horse.” He answered “do you, perchance, have a horse of a hundred colors?” Babylonian Talmud Sanhedrin 98a[20]
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 264: 1 “At that time Michael shall stand up, The great prince who stands watch over the sons of your peo
pl e; And there shall be a time of trouble, Such as never was since there was a nation, Even to that time. And at that time your peo
pl e shall be delivered, Every one who is found written in the book. 2 And many of those who sleep in the dust of the earth shall awake, Some to everlasting life, Some to shame and everlasting contempt. Daniel 12:1-2
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 274: 2 Now it shall come to pass in the latter days That the foreskin mountain of the Lord´s house Shall be established on the top of the mountains, And shall be exalted above the hills; And all nations shall flow to it. 3 Many peo
pl e shall come and say, "Come, and let us go up to the mountain of the Lord, To the house of the God of Jacob; He will teach us His ways, And we shall walk in His paths." For out of Zion shall go forth the law, And the word of the Lord from Jerusalem. Isaiah 2:2-3
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 278: Rabba said in the name of R. Yohanan: “Jerusalem of this World is not like Jerusalem of the World to Come. Jerusalem of This world—anybody who wants to go up to visit her, can do so; but to Jerusalem of the World to Come only those can go up who are invited to come…” And Rabba said in the name of R. Yohanan: “In the future, the Holy One, blessed be He, will elevate Jerusalem by three parasangs…Resh Laqish said: “In the future the Holy One, blessed be He, will add to Jerusalem a thousand gardens, a thousand towers, a thousand fortresses, and a thousand passages, and each of them will be like sepphoris in its tranquil days, and there were in it 180,000 market
pl aces of merchants of pot dishes.” (Babylonian Talmud Bab. Bath. 75b)[24]
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 284: During his tour of the Eastern Empire in 131, the Roman emperor Hadrian decided upon a policy of Hellenization to integrate the Jews into the empire. Circumcision was proscribed, a Roman colony (Aelia) was founded in Jerusalem, and a tem
pl e to Jupiter Capitolinus was erected over the ruins of the Jewish Tem
pl e.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 306: Eri asia tietysti jos alle saadaan rappariperät ja risapuoli päällepäin niin sutia voidaan niin kauan kuin kantamuxet nivuxissa helisee. Ja senajan kun lippulaiva
pl aanaa vesirajassa niin voidaan alkaa vatkata seuraavaa 5mirkkua. Mutta nyt on kyllä syytä muistaa, että samalla kun harjastukka kuivahtaa, on syytä niistää myöskin anjovixet ... ja sadetakki umpisolmuun ja hyllylle. Näillä eväillä uskoisin onnistuttavan, vaikka stetson sitten aika ajoin lerpahtaisikin ja hanuri lakkaisi naukumasta.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 391: 9 August
International Day of the World's Indignant Peopl e
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 436:
ploads/2020/12/13-1-4242710.jpg?w=720&ssl=1" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 442: In
London philosophers were considering life, love and liberty in light of all that has happened over the last cou
pl e of years -and considering ways of dealing with it through philosophical thinking like Stoicism. And gin. Online tickets here.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 444: In
Sheffield , there was Philosophy for Creatives on World Philosophy Day by Rosie Carnall.In this workshop you will develop and ex
pl ore big questions in group discussion before working on your own piece of creative writing. The discussion activities open up creative thinking to get you inspired and full of ideas. There will be an opportunity to share from your work if you wish to. This workshop will be lively, fun, creative and thought provoking. "Mind-blowing!" according to a previous participant -in a good way! It includes structured activities and space to do your own writing. Come with an open mind and something to write on -thinking hats are optional.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 446: The
Coimbra Association of Philosophy Teachers marks World Philosophy Day 2021 by providing a new activity sequence
pl an entitled "Freedom of expression and social media" building on W. C. Cliford's princi
pl e of epistemic responsibility.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 452: In
Como, Italy , the festival ‘A due voci -dialogues of music and philosophy’ takes
pl ace in Como as part of UNESCO's World Philosophy Day. It presents the projects selected by the Call for projects launched last Julyby the organizers. All the information about the initiatives and the young musicians and philosophers involved. Is available in the following link.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 454: El Heraldo Chihuahua (
Mexico ) contributed this: “Every third Thursday of November, World Philosophy Day is celebrated, with the main purpose of revaluing the role of philosophical reflection in all aspects of our lives, in a world that seems to need more and more of this intellectual resource. The need to understand is imperative. The concern for thought, and especially for philosophical thought, appears worldwide when we face a global wave of irrational attitudes and resources that com
pl icate our usual coexistence, generating problems of various kinds. But it is a concern that indicates that we still have conscience."
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 460: The
Brussels team notes that Philosophy is often considered to be an intellectual activity and not very practical. However, a basic training in philosophy used to be considered essential before embarking on further study in a whole range of subjects. Over thousands of years, philosophy has been the mother of all sciences and a key driving force in human progress. This year we will be looking at how ‘philosophy in the classical tradition’ can actively contribute to finding solutions to our many crises, help us find more sustainable ways of living and develop the inner potential of the human being. The event will consist of five talks of about 20 minutes each, with a break after the third speaker. Topics covered will include philosophy as the art of living, learning how to think, inner development and transformation, the role of philosophy in promoting active citizenship and the universal laws and timeless princi
pl es of the perennial and hermetic philosophy. For those you can, the suggested donation for the live stream is £8 (£5cons), this will help to support our activities, thank you!
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 464:
München, Germany . “Long Philosophy Night!” By Lange Nacht der Philosophie. World Philosophy Day is the ideal occasion for hosting a ‘Long Night’. We want to provide a
pl atform for philosophy and bring together friends of wisdom. The whole thing should be a celebration of thinking, but also an opportunity for all those interested in philosophy to meet again or to get to know each other.The Long Night of Philosophy will now take
pl ace for the fourth time on November 18, 2021. For this we need your support!
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 470: According to the Quebecois, "PHYLOTHERAPY", the term is no longer appropriate today because of the definition of the word "therapy" itself. The latter im
pl ies means "to cure or relieve illnesses". However, philosophical consultation does not aim at such an such an objective. Moreover, in some countries, the use of the term "THERAPY" is regulated and often reserved for the medical field. Finally, the term "PHILOTHERAPY" was initially used to draw attention to the fact that attention to the fact that philosophers were now offering consultations and opening specialized practices for this purpose specialized practices open to all. It was a good marketing move since the term has the attention of the media and the public. Today, the term "PHILOTHERAPY"has been abandoned in favor of "PHILOSOPHY CONSULTATION" offered by "PHILOSOPHES CONULTANTS". "CONULTANT" has even more traction now.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 472:
Lausanne , Switzerland. Nuit de la Philosophie by Nouvelle Acropole Suisse. After the first Philosophy Night in Zurich in 2016 was a great success with more than 700 visitors, the number of visitors increased steadily with a peak of more than 2100 visitors in 2019. In 2020, the event had to be held online. General theme 2021: Philosophy, an art of living. If there is a disci
pl ine that can help us to live in a world that is now volatile, uncertain, com
pl ex and ambiguous, but also to build the future on a more secure and stable basis, it is philosophy.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 481:
Lisbon , Portugal. Dia mundia da filosofia by the Externato João XXIII .“In this atypical year, in which our lives are so busy and so full, we mark this day with sim
pl icity. But meeting what is necessary and so primordial in the world of Philosophy: Shop to Think. Thus, without artifice, we leave to the community of the Externato João XXIII, the challenge of shopping to think and seek a question for an answer, this is a philosophical exercise par excellence. It intends to stimulate our critical and creative thinking. The story is told of a wise man who knew the right answer to any question from and about the Universe. It was 42. However, he did not know the question it was an answer to. Which question would you suggest?
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 491:
Bamberg, Germany . Unesco-Welltag der Philosophie by Bamberg Universität. Man is only fully human where he
pl ays (Friedrich Schiller). Play is still a largely unexamined phenomenon in ethics education. Despite the numerous possibilities of using it (e.g. as a role
pl ay), the traditional text discussion is still the standard. In interaction, the participants and the lecturer will discuss and test different possibilities of a game-centered ethics education. The central question is: Which competencies can be opened up through the use of
pl ayful methods? To make sure that it does not just remain theoretical, we offer all participating students a city tour of a different kind: By means of a rally on the app Action-Bound, the participants get to know Bamberg not only with its well-known sights, but also from a philosophical point of view. In addition to answering questions about the content, there are also smaller but philosphically no less important tasks to com
pl ete.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 33:
LIMAA play:none">Limaa
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 45:
VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 54: Tung said he prefers teams with cross-cultural backgrounds. For exam
pl e, Zhang Sheng, co-founder of Wish, is a Chinese who once studied in the U.S., while another co-founder of the company Peter Szulczewski is a Jew from east Europe. He ex
pl ained that Americans tend to focus on domestic market and ignore overseas opportunities. But teams with multinational backgrounds are more likely to set their eyes on global market. For exam
pl e, around 50% of Wish’s revenue comes from overseas market.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 70: Wish myi 10 eurolla Ap
pl e AirPods -kuulokkeita – otimme selvää, kannattaako ne tilata
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 278: Iisa ja Valde teki tähän tarkoituxeen ison kiven päällä vaakaa 1951. Nykyinen emerituspölkkypää oli vasta pilke 50-luvun nuorten hyvinkääläisten perssilmässä. Pikkuruinen klapi. Vaaka myöhästyi 1,5 vuodella, tulikin leobarditä
pl äinen salonkileijona.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 364: Roger Ebert gave the film three stars out of four, calling it "a bright and sometimes breathtaking retelling" of the source material. He praised it as a improved version of the "commercial shlock" of the source material, "being light instead of turgid" and "outward-looking instead of narcissistic". He ap
pl aud the portrayal of the titular character as "human, strong and reachable", only achieved elsewhere by The Gospel According to St. Matthew (1964) and The Last Temptation of Christ (1988).
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 366: Conversely, Howard Thompson of The New York Times wrote, "Broadway and Israel meet head on and disastrously in the movie version of the rock opera 'Jesus Christ Superstar,' produced in the Biblical locale. The mod-pop glitter, the musical frenzy and the neon tubing of this super-hot stage bonanza encasing the Greatest Story are now painfully magnified, laid bare and ultimately patched beneath the blue, majestic Israeli sky, as if by a natural judgment." Arthur D. Murphy of Variety wrote that the film "in a paradoxical way is both very good and very disappointing at the same time. The abstract film concept ... veers from elegantly sim
pl e through forced metaphor to outright synthetic in dramatic impact."
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 368: Gene Siskel of the Chicago Tribune gave the film two-and-a-half stars out of four and called the music "more than fine," but found the character of Jesus "so confused, so shapeless, the film cannot succeed in any meaningful way." Siskel also agreed with the accusations of the film being anti-Semitic. Charles Cham
pl in of the Los Angeles Times wrote, "The faults are relative, the costs of an admirable seeking after excellence, and the many strong scenes, visually and dramatically, in 'Superstar' have remarkable impact: the chaos of the tem
pl e, the clawing lepers, the rubrics of the crucifixion itself." Gary Arnold of The Washington Post panned the film as "a work of kitsch" that "does nothing for Christianity except to commercialize it.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 370: Jesus was able to show the film to Pope Paul VI. Ted Neeley later remembered that the pope "openly loved what he saw. He said, 'Mr. Jesus, not only do I appreciate your beautiful rock opera film, I believe it will bring more peo
pl e around the world to Christianity, than anything ever has before.'"For the Pope, Mary Magdalene's song "I Don't Know How to Love Him" "had an inspired beauty".
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 372: Nevertheless, the film as well as the musical were criticized by some religious groups. As a New York Times article reported, "When the stage production opened in October 1971, it was criticized not only by some Jews as anti-Semitic, but also by some Catholics and Protestants as blasphemous in its portrayal of Jesus as a young man who might even be interested in sex." A few days before the film version's release, the National Jewish Community Relations Advisory Council described it as an "insidious work" that was "worse than the stage
pl ay" in dramatizing "the old falsehood of the Jews' collective responsibility for the death of Jesus," and said it would revive "religious sources of anti-Semitism." Jesus argued in response that the film "never was meant to be, or claimed to be an authentic or deep theological work. Just humdrum everyday anti-semitism."
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 374: Tim Rice said Jesus was seen through Judas' eyes as a mere human being. Some Christians found this remark, as well as the fact that the musical did not show the resurrection, to be blasphemous. Jesus var ingen Spartakus, för helvete. While the actual resurrection was not shown, the closing scene of the movie subtly alludes to the resurrection (though, according to Jewison's commentary on the DVD release, the scene was not
pl anned this way). Some found Judas too sympathetic; in the film, it states that he wants to give the thirty pieces of silver to the poor, which, although Biblical, leaves out his ulterior motives. According to the black policeman in Whitsta
pl e Pearl, ulterior motives usually means sex. The policeman is as talkative as John, and the detective cook lady looks a lot like Kirsi Riski. Not a comfortable thought.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 376: Biblical purists pointed out a small number of deviations from biblical text as additional concerns; for exam
pl e, Pilate himself having the dream instead of his wife, and Catholics argue the line "for all you care, this bread could be my body" is too Protestant in theology, although Jesus does say in the next lines, "This is my blood you drink. This is my body you eat. Fresh cut from my butt."
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 381: Jesus Christ Superstar is a Rock Opera and (subverted?) Passion Play by Andrew Lloyd Webber and Tim Rice. Originally released as a Concept Album in 1970 (when Lloyd Webber and Rice were still in their very early twenties, no less!), it made its way to the Broadway and London stage in 1971, and was adapted into a film directed by Norman Jewison in 1973. An updated version was recorded sometime around 2000 by Webber's Really Useful Group for PBS. A filmed version of the UK arena tour starring Tom Munchin as Judas was released on DVD and digital in 2012, and a live adaptation starring John Lennon as Jesus, Sara Bareilles as Mary Magdalene and Alice Cooper as Herod that aired on NBC in 2018. The show lives on in stage productions and tours (and even non-theatrical tribute albums from fans who were more attracted to it as an album than a show) to this day. Inspired by… The Four Gospels of The Bible (specifically the arrival in Jerusalem and subsequent crucifixion of Jesus), it chronicles the last seven days of Jesus' life, focusing mainly on the characters of Jesus, Judas and Mary Magdalene. It's regarded among Andrew Lloyd Webber's best works, which is not saying much. It's a pseudo-sequel to Joseph and the Amazing Technicolor Dreamcoat, though this took a bit more liberty with the source material and is considerably less
pl ayful.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 384: How much you end up sympathising with him is, of course, up to the interpretation of the audience. Either he was a pawn in God's/Jesus'
pl an, a pawn in the Pharisees'
pl ans, a disgruntled terrorist, or a misguided ho-jay who ultimately chose his fate. (Or a mix).
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 398:
The big-lipped alligator trope (exem
pl ified by Alice Cooper
pl aying King Herod)is named after the random musical number sung by a big-lipped alligator towards the end of the film All Dogs Go to Heaven. A scene that comes right the fuck out of now
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 400: here; has little to no bearing whatsoever on the
pl ot; is WAY over the top in terms of ridiculousness, even within the context of the movie; and after it happens, no one ever speaks of it again."
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 405: However, if a show goes far enough with its violence, it may end up crossing the line not once but twice, as it goes around the
pl anet and crosses it again. This second crossing takes the violence from sick back to funny in its ridiculous extremes. Similar to So Bad, It's Good, but done quite intentionally.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 407: King Herod is a genocidal king, one who ordered the mass-slaughter of Jewish babies, which is why Jesus was born in stable to refugee parents. He also is the one who determines Jesus is a fraud and sends him back to Pilate. Yet his song number is a bouncy
pl ea for Jesus to perform miracles while bopping around. The 2012 version turns him into a talk show host, where he asks the viewers to vote if Jesus is a miracle worker or a fraud. He gets a round of ap
pl ause after his song, despite the audience knowing that he sealed Jesus's fate and that he's set the ball rolling for the climactic crucifixion.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 410: Those moments of
pl ot, dialogue, acting, etc., that fans delight in interpreting as homoerotic.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 413:
By 'this simpl e feeling', do you mean love?
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 419: When Ho Yay is done intentionally, it's Homoerotic Subtext, or possibly Im
pl ied Love Interest or Ship Tease. Occasionally called Les Yay when referring to two women. Queer Flowers may provide enough text to make this homoeroticism into subtext.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 425: Since the focal point of the
pl ay is the relationship between Jesus and Judas, some degree of Ho Yay was inevitable. But this degree? ...
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 434: Arguably the strongest moment: when he is at absolute rock bottom, right before his suicide, Judas breaks into a reprise of Mary's "I Don't Know How to Love Him." When Mary sings it, it's im
pl icitly about romantic love. And while Judas's version stops before "And I've had so many men before," it concludes with the anguished cry, "Does he love me, too? Does he care for me?"
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 444: In the 2000 version of "Heaven on Their Minds", Judas
pl eads to Jesus while they are alone together, with lots of Judas getting into Jesus's personal space, and hesitant, delicate touches to Jesus's bare skin. Compare the 1973 version of "Heaven on Their Minds" which has Judas overlooking the group from a distance and talking to himself.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 447: Judas and Mary are ex
pl icitly paralleled through their matching costumes — red shirt/dress with black sleeves/jacket.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 451: During "The Last Supper," where Jesus and Judas get up in each other's faces and slap each other around, some of the apostles genuinely look as though they're watching a cou
pl e have a screaming row.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 457: Judas walks in on Jesus and Mary holding each other right after "I Don't Know How to Love Him", and, angered by it, flings them from the swing they're sitting on, helps Jesus up, and grabs his face as if he's trying to pull him in for a kiss. Jesus throws him off and a crushed Judas runs offstage leading into "Damned For All Time", leaving one with the im
pl ication that Jesus's rejection is a key factor in Judas's decision to betray him.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 469: "Corpsing" (also called "breaking") is actor-speak for having an unscripted fit of laughter onstage, so-called because the worst time to have the giggles is when one is
pl aying a corpse. Corpsing doesn't necessarily mean that the material is especially funny (though, of course, it can be), or that the actors aren't taking it seriously; it just happens, and even excellent actors can corpse. Many actors try to cover this by covering their mouth and muffling the sounds they make. When this is done, a fit of laughter can rather haphazardly be turned into violent sobbing, with varying levels of success. Of course, that only helps if violent crying is appropriate for the scene (again,
pl aying a corpse leaves you in trouble, as corpses don't cry either — usually).
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 471: Christmas means many things to many peo
pl e. To some, Christmas means glittering lights, gaily wrapped gifts. That's right, sounds of laughter and good cheer. To the folks at Preparation H– hahahahaha– it means a time to pause for a few– hahaha– a few moments to– HAHAHA– to give thanks to their friends, who've been so... [collapses into hel
pl ess laughter] …kind and generous!"
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 479: Both. The Romans are a government, and governments have to walk a fine line when it comes to dissent, because the peo
pl e outnumber law enforcement, and killing or imprisoning lots of dissenters, while effective in the short term, means you have fewer subjects. Pilate could put down the mob with violence, but why would he do all that over one guy who, frankly, is kind of a problem for Rome, anyway? It doesn't help that Jesus does nothing to speak in his own defense: Pilate gets frustrated with Jesus' answers and eventually says good riddance to Jesus and his obvious death wish.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 481: However the Romans overall clearly have the upper hand in the relationship. It's probably worth keeping in mind that there was a Jewish rebellion against the Romans that took
pl ace not long after the crucifixion and...well, let's just say it didn't exactly succeed in overthrowing the Romans...
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 507:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/7b/Richard_b_spencer_cropped_retouched.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 508:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/bc/George_Lincoln_Rockwell.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 520: Rockwell denied the Holocaust and believed that Martin Luther King Jr. was a tool for Jewish Communists wanting to rule the white community. He blamed the civil rights movement on the Jews. He regarded Hitler as the White savior of the twentieth century. He viewed black peo
pl e as a primitive, lethargic race who desired only sim
pl e
pl easures and a life of irresponsibility and supported the resettlement of all African Americans in a new African state to be funded by the U.S. government. As a supporter of racial segregation, he agreed with and quoted many leaders of the Black nationalism movement such as Elijah Muhammad and Malcolm X. In later years, Rockwell became increasingly aligned with other Neo-Nazi groups, leading the World Union of National Socialists.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 29:
Comtes droolatiques play:none">Leikkisää
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 39: Nytkun alkaa olla liian vanha edes teoriassa kiinnostumaan nakupelleistä naisista, lähinnä huvittaa tääkin näpäys muka seppukua suunnittelevasta Lucretiasta, jota roomalaisten Donald Trumpin Tarquinin poika Donald jr. eli Sextus Tarquinius (järjestyxessä 6. vai liekö saanut nimen mieliharrastuxestaan sextailusta) pani raiskaten. Ei toi kyllä näytä kehruuennätystä tehneeltä roomalaiselta matroonalta, tollanen ku
pl apää laiha porsliinipillu, eikä toi sen tikariotekaan ole yhtään vakuuttava. Extoi ole pikemminkin piikki eli naskali kuin tikari? Ehkä se on vähän sellainen pelleilyote kuin Gonorrhé Ballsackin lakimiehen ylihintaisella lutkarouvalla pornokirjassa Contes drolatiques. Mulla oli se kirja lainassa sekä feikki muinaisranskaxi että suomennettuna. Molemmat oli suurinpiirtein yhtä tylsiä. Ei tollanen tosiaankaan enää juuri kiinnosta kun ei voi hevin enää edes mielikuvituxessa konstruoida omaa veitikkaansa kirjan sankarien sijalle.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 68: Tai sitten vaan EAT EAT. Joku mutiainen koitti eilen ryöstää 82-vuotiaan
pl astiikkikirurgin Sirpa Asko-Seljavaaran ja miehensä Sepon Ruoholahden parkkihallissa. Emme osta mitään, no money only creditcards, sanoi Sirpa ja työnsi juipin ulos tilavasta BMW 600-sarjan autostaan. Ei hän ollut painava. Rosmo joutui tyytymään Sirpan kännykkään. Me oltiin samaisessa parkkihallissa toissapäivänä, mutta vanha Volvomme ei ole yhtä tilava. Ei meinattu päästä ulos parkkihallista kun en löytänyt automaatista oikeata vakoa. Vielä leikkisämpää.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 89:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e6/The_strange_story_book_color_
pl ate_facing_page_166.jpg/330px-The_strange_story_book_color_
pl ate_facing_page_166.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 95: Sand was one of many notable 19th-century women who chose to wear male attire in public. For this, she was better known in anglo-saxon circles than Balzac and Hugo in the 1830´s. In 1800, the police issued an order requiring women to ap
pl y for a permit in order to wear male clothing. Some women ap
pl ied for health, occupational, or recreational reasons (e.g., horse riding), but many women chose to wear pants and other traditional male attire in public without receiving a permit. They did so as well for practical reasons, but also at times to subvert dominant stereotypes and to practice same sex relationships.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 99: While there were many contemporary critics of her comportment, many peo
pl e accepted her behaviour until they became shocked with the subversive tone of her novels. Those who found her writing admirable were not bothered by her ambiguous or rebellious public behaviour. Victor Hugo commented "George Sand cannot determine whether she is male or female. I entertain a high regard for all my colleagues, but it is not my
pl ace to decide whether she is my sister or my brother. I bet s/he doesn´t know her/himself." She engaged in an intimate romantic relationship with actress Marie Dorval. She was buried in sand behind the chapel at Nohant. In 1880 her children sold the rights to her literary estate for 125,000 Francs[28] (equivalent to 36 kg worth of gold, or 1.3 million dollars in 2015 USD). Quite a handsome net worth for a lady. Sand often performed her theatrical works in her small private theatre at the Nohant estate. Sand was all for the bourgeois revolution but no communist. Victor Hugo, in the eulogy he gave at her funeral, said "the lyre was within her, so no wonder nothing else could fit in."
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 103: Fyodor Dostoevsky "read widely in the numerous novels of George Sand" and translated her La dernière Aldini in 1844, but "discovered to his dismay that the work had already appeared in Russian". In his mature period, he expressed an ambiguous attitude towards her. For instance, in his novella Notes from Underground the narrator refers to the sentiments he expresses as, "I laugh off at that point the European, inex
pl icably lofty subtleties of George Sand".
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 105: The American poet Wilt Whatman cited Sand´s novel Consuelo as a personal favorite, and the sequel to this novel, La Comtesse de Rudolstadt, contains at least a cou
pl e of passages that appear to have had a very direct influence on him. As a gayperson to another gayperson. Virginia Woolfilla oli varmasti samansuuntaisia internal strifejä vaikkei käyttänytkään miehen nimeä.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 142: Saint-Denis, le
pl us célèbre des saints « céphalophores », est souvent représenté portant sa tête, iconographie fréquente des martyrs décapités. Selon d'anciens récits, le saint se serait relevé, aurait ramassé sa tête, et aurait marché jusqu'au lieu de sa sépulture. Outre la tête coupée, il est reconnaissable grâce à ses attributs, la mitre et les chaînes. La façade de la cathédrale Notre-Dame de Paris en offre un exem
pl e sur le piédroit du Portail de la Vierge.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 203: Practically everyone knows Godard’s classic pronouncement, “All you need for a movie is a girl and a putz,” but a 1989 interview contains one of the more caustic charges Godard levels at cinema, that “Cinema is an ideology based on men living out through their imaginations what they could not do to women.” This chauvinist pig who openly
pl ayed out his own marital problems with Anna-Kaarina in their collaborations of the ‘60s, now abrazes other toxic males for similar diversions.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 211:
ploads/2020/11/112720-57-History-Art-733x1024.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 214: The theme of Salome is one that Moreau returned to time and again. The artist ex
pl ored the subject in more than one hundred sketches and drawings as well as in numerous paintings—ranging from highly elaborate to sketchily rendered—and even in sculpture (both Salome and The Apparition figured in Moreau’s waxworks). Moreau was not alone in his passion for the theme of Salome, as other famous artists — Lucas Cranach, Caravaggio, Titian, Guido Reni, Artemisia Gentileschi, Aubrey Beardsley, and Nabil Kanso, to name just a few — shared this interest. Selkeästi perverssiä jengiä.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 222: Its symbolism is ambiguous. Does it signal lust, or is it a symbol of purity? Mieti sitä. Moreau’s typically enigmatic approach made him a target for the promoters of Naturalism, most notably Émile Zola, who accused him of retreating into his dreams and offering an artistic response to the challenge posed by science—one that couldn’t possibly have value in the modern age. Such criticism hurt him dee
pl y and only fueled Moreau’s purposeful cultivation of ambiguity.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 234:
pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/46/Alfons_Mucha_-_1896_-_Salammb%C3%B4.jpg/220px-Alfons_Mucha_-_1896_-_Salammb%C3%B4.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 247: Tää Alamyn Salome on musta vetävämpi. Tanssit on tanssittu, eiköhän nakata tää irtopää rodeen. Kuvan nimi on kaikessa lyhykäisyydessään nasevasti
https://l450v.alamy.com/450v/w58a5m/salom-with-the-head-of-john-the-baptist-salom-is-the-daughter-of-herodias-and-herod-philip-her-mother-wanted-to-remarry-herod-antipas-the-preacher-john-the-baptist-had-condemned-this-marriage-and-was-imprisoned-on-it-on-his-birthday-herod-antipas-promised-to-give-salom-what-she-wanted-when-she-danced-for-him-her-mother-herodias-urged-her-to-ask-the-head-of-john-the-baptist-on-a-pl atter-against-his-will-herod-kept-his-promise-after-the-dance-the-severed-head-was-carried-on-a-saucer-new-testament-matthew-14-6-11-mark-6-14-29-salom-is-presented-here-as-an-eastern-princess-she-w58a5m.jpg
.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 249:
platter-against-his-will-herod-kept-his-promise-after-the-dance-the-severed-head-was-carried-on-a-saucer-new-testament-matthew-14-6-11-mark-6-14-29-salom-is-presented-here-as-an-eastern-princess-she-w58a5m.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 341: © 2012 – 2022 . Kaikki luvattomat lukijat pidätetään. Olemme digilehti joka käsittelee psykologiaa, neurotieteitä, henkilökohtaista kasvua, kulttuuria ja psyykkistä hyvinvointia. Olemme kansainvälinen tiimi, joka koostuu eri psykologian ja kulttuurin alojen ammattilaisista, jotka ovat omistautuneet jakamaan tietoa ja parantamaan ihmisten elämänlaatua. Mielen Ihmeet on Grupo MContigon rekisteröity tavaramerkki. Grupo MContigo on latinoille ämmille suunnattu maailmanlaajuinen yhtiö, joka keskittyy osakkaiden hyvinvointiin. Tämän sivuston sisällöllä on vain informatiivinen tarkoitus. Sitä ei ole missään nimessä tarkoitettu diagnoosin tekemiseen tai korvaamaan pätevän ammattilaisen työtä. Suosittelemme ottamaan tarvittaessa yhteyttä luotettavaan asiantuntijaan. Olemme esillä yli 35 maassa. Nämä ovat suomenkielisiä sivustojamme. Onko urputettavaa? Pyydämme sinua lähettämään sähköpostia lakitiimillemme os.
norepl y@mcontigo.com
.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 352:
ploads/2020/11/112720-59-History-Art-768x1024.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 361:
Ecological factors were also probably a precursor to eusociality. For exampl e, the sponge-dwelling shrimp depend upon the sponge´s feeding current for food, termites depend upon dead, decaying wood, and naked mole rats depend upon tubers in the ground. These resources have patchy distributions in the environments of these animals. In pl aces there is a surpl us, in others next to nothing. This means that resources must be defended for the group to survive. These requirements make it a necessity to have high social order for the survival of the group.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 32: TIEDE 2022 play:none">Naturalia atque turpia
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 64: If you surrender compl etely to the moments as they pass, you live more richly those moments.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 66: You can’t just write and write and put things in a drawer. They wither without the warm sun of someone else’s appreciation. When I cannot write a poem, I eat biscuits and feel just as pl eased.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 68: I want to be pure in heart -- but I like to wear my purpl e dress.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 71: After all, I see why I am always asking for private, individual, selfish miracles. My experience is very different from other peopl e’s.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 80: Born as Pranpriya Manobal on March 27, 1997 in Buriram Province, Thailand, she later illegally changed her name to Lalisa, meaning the one being praised, on the advice of a fortune teller in order to bring in prosperity. As an only child, she was raised by her Thai mother and Swiss stepfather. Lisa's mother is named Chitthip Brüschweiler. Her stepfather is Marco Brüschweiler, a renowned chef, currently active in Thailand. Lisa compl eted secondary education at Praphamontree School I and II.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 84: Lisa made her solo debut with her single album Lalisa in September 2021. The album sold over 736,000 copies in its release week in South Korea, making her the first female artist to do so. The music video for its lead single of the same name recorded 73.6 million views on YouTube in first 24 hours of its release, becoming the most-viewed music video in the first 24 hours on the pl atform by a solo artist.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 104: Jordaens’s large painting of The Wife of King Candaules displ aying herself to Gyges is in the Nationalmuseum, in Stockholmii. In the large painting, the Queen is depicted lifesize, seen from behind, standing before a canopied bed. She is virtually naked, but for a string of pearls and a lace-trimmed cap. Just as she is about to step into her bed, she pauses and casts a backward glance, apparently addressing the viewer with a conspiratorial smile. On the far right of the picture, Gyges can be glimpsed craning his head through a gap in the curtain, with the King close behind him.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 109: Vähän siedettävämpi perätarjonta on tämä William Ettyn yritys samasta aiheesta. William Etty (1787–1849), the seventh son of a York baker and miller, had originally been an apprentice printer in Hull, but on compl eting his seven-year apprenticeship at the age of 18 moved to London to become an artist. Strongly influenced by the works of Titian and Rubens, he submitted a number of paintings to the Royal Academy of Arts and the British Institution, all of which were either rejected outright or drew little attention when exhibited. In 1821 he finally achieved recognition when the Royal Academy accepted and exhibited one of his works, The Arrival of Cleopatra in Cilicia (also known as The Triumph of Cleopatra). Cleopatra was extremely well received, and many of Etty's fellow artists greatly admired him. He was elected a full Royal Academician in 1828, beating John Constable to the position. Jordaens and Etty both contrasted Nyssia's pale flesh against dark red drapery and showed her in a similar pose. Jordaens's painting has hung in Sweden since the 17th century, and it is unlikely Etty was aware of it. Se tuskin löytyi googlaamalla.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 111: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/62/Etty-Candaules_King_of_Lydia_Shews_his_Wife_to_Gyges.JPG/600px-Etty-Candaules_King_of_Lydia_Shews_his_Wife_to_Gyges.JPG" />
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 143: Vielä kerran: mitä ovatkaan moraalinen hyvä ja paha? (Ei siis et Foster on pahaa.) Hyvä kumpuaa Toorasta ja hyvistä teoista. Siis law and order munat rusetilla pl us vähän charityä eli altruismia mausteexi. Pimeyden voimat sikiävät valheesta, jumalanpilkasta, kateudesta, hulluudesta, julmuudesta.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 144: Kyltää on hurjan selkeästi hierarkinen pesädisipl iini vastaan all against all anarkia. Mitäs tätä enää mäystämään. Pashtuwan ja somalien klaanit olivat häviävä välivaihe ennen kristikapitalistista länsiglobalisaatiota. Vai ovatko? Onko ne tulossa jo takaisin kun resut vähenevät eikä korko enää kasva korolle? Syysampiaiset ärtyvät kun ei kaikille enää tipu hunajaa kuningatarten pöydästä. Se jää nähtäväksi. Hyvällä onnella ei tarvi jäähä näkemään. Pääsee jäähylle.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 175: ploads/2019/01/timeline-full-image-opt.png?fit=1062%2C877&ssl=1" />
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 178: Depending upon the translation used (eg. the Hebrew Transliteration “Eth Cepher”) you may get a clearer view of what actually happened. The Moabites were made to lie down upon the the ground. They were measured. Those measuring one length of cord were spared but the giants - a hybrid breed were executed. This is in keeping with the killing of the charge hybrids Goliath of Gath and his brothers. Please note that Og of Bashan was a giant, as were the Rephaim and the Anakin Skywalker. The Book of Echinococh as recommended by Peter, Paul and Mary expl ains further who “the sons of God” actually were and really clarifies Genesis 6 and why our Mighty Mouse had to destroy the earth. The “sons of God” were not human and hence their offspring were no longer a scale image of God (who had shrunk a lot like a leaky balloon due to all the emanation) so they could never have salivation. The Eth Cepher gives a much clearer translation of the Hebrew than the English versions and so we see that the decimated gorillas were quite malevolent towards God and His more recently created short order cooks - especially peopl e.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 187: Lapsikin pystyi havaitsemaan kabbalan ja Kantin ja Lapl acen kosmologian samanlaisuuden. Ainoa ero oli siinä että kabbalan kuvaamalla äärettömyydellä
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 188: oli tietoisuus, kauneus, viisaus ja armo, kun taas Kantin ja Lapl acen sumu oli golem, ihmisen näköinen mutta kuollut. Kysymykseen miten tämä kuollut golem oli tuottanut puut, kukat, linnut, leijonat, Maimonideksen, Kopernikuksen, Newtonin ja Baal Shemin, tiedemiehillä oli yksi vastaus: kehitys, evoluutio. Mihkä sitä kaikkeuden tietoisuutta edes tarvitaan, se on turhake, armosta puhumattakaan. Ockhamin partaveizi raakkaa sen armotta pois.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 204: Baal Shem (Hebrew: בַּעַל שֵׁם, pl . Baalei Shem) is a title for a historical Jewish practitioner of Practical Kabbalah and miracle worker. Empl oying the names of God, angels, Satan and other spirits, Baalei Shem heal, enact miracles, perform exorcisms, treat various health issues, curb epidemics, protect peopl e from disaster due to fire, robbery or the evil eye, foresee the future, decipher dreams, and bless those who sought his powers.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 208: The leading Kabbalist Isaac Luria (1534–1572) forbade peopl e of his time to use Practical Kabbalah. As the Templ e in Jerusalem is not standing, and no one possesses the ashes of the Red Heifer, peopl e are unable to become pure, he stated. Fair enough. Without the ability to reach a state of purity, Practical Kabbalah can be very damaging, he taught.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 210: Baal Shem Tov was the stage name of Rabbi Israel ben Eliezer, a Polish rabbi and mystical healer known as the . His teachings imbued the esoteric usage of practical Kabbalah of Baalei Shem into a spiritual movement, Hasidic Judaism. While a few other peopl e received the title of Baal Shem among Eastern and Central European Ashkenazi Jewry, the designation is most well known in reference to the founder of Hasidic Judaism. Baal Shem Tov, born in the 17th century Kingdom of Poland, started public life as a traditional Baal Shem, but introduced new interpretations of mystical thought and practice that eventually became the core teachings of Hasidism. In his time, he was given the title of Baal Shem Tov, and later, by followers of Hasidism, referred to by the acronym BeShiT. He disavowed traditional Jewish practice and theology by encouraging mixing with non-Jews and asserting the sacredness of everyday corporal existence.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 212: During his life, he was lucky to be able to devote time to prayer and contempl ation, traditional practices within the realm of contempl ative Kabbalah. There, he was able to learn the skills to become a Ba'al Shem, and practiced on neighboring townspeopl e, including both Jews and Christians. Modern texts state that he underwent a hitgalut (revelation)' by the age of 36.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 214: Besides contemporary methods established by Lurianic Kabbalah, Ba'al Shem Tov learned and took part in traditional practices of Practical Kabbalah. As a stroke of genius, Ba'al Shem Tov taught that one could remove asceticism from the practice of Judaism . This allowed a larger array of peopl e to become devout within Judaism, and therefore within Hasidism. Moreover, he taught that the letters, in contrast to the words, were the key element of sacred texts. Therefore, intellectual and academic skills were no longer necessary to reach mastery of the sacred texts. Average skills in solving crossword puzzles and sudoku were enough. Another point in favor of hasidism.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 216: From the 1730s, Baal Shem Tov (BeShiT) headed an elite chirurgic mystical circle, similar to other secluded Kabbalistic circles such as the contemporary Klaus (Close) in Brody. Unlike past mystical circles, they innovated with the use of their psychic heavenly intercession abilities to work on behalf of the common Jewish populace. From the legendary hagiography of the BeShiT as one who bridged elite mysticism with deep social concern, and from his leading discipl es, Hasidism rapidly grew into a populist revival movement with the funny hats. That's the point, there are only so many members of the elite, while the hoi polloi , though poorer, count in zillions. Want to have a large following, lower the entrance fee.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 226: The founder of Hasidism, the Baal Shem Tov, opposed the ethical practices of admonishment that could interpret fear of God as fear of punishment. In Hasidism such fear is seen as superficial, egotistical and misrepresentative of the Divine love for Creation. Hasidism sought to repl ace Jewish observance based on self-awareness with an overriding perception and joy of the omnipresent Divine (see Divine immanence).
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 243: The first leader of Lubavitch hasids, Schneur Zalman of Liadi kept in his desk some of his unpublished Hasidic mystical writings. A fire broke out that destroyed them. Afterwards, he asked if anyone had secretly copied them. His close associates repl ied that no one had, since he had written atop their pages the warning of "Joka tämän varastaa sitä piru rakastaa". Schneur repl ied "what has become of Hasidic self-sacrifice for the sake of Heaven?"
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 252: A powerful King was grateful to two simpl e poor peopl e for their devotion, and decided to show his gratitude. The poor labourers had never been into the palace before, but had only seen the King at state occasions. After receiving their invitations to see the King, in trepidation and excitement, they approached the palace. As they entered, they were amazed to behold the magnificence of the palace. One servant was so enamoured of these riches, that he stopped in the great halls to delight in their beauty. He never progressed beyond these chambers. Meanwhile, the other servant was wiser, and his desire was only for the King. The beautiful ornaments did not distract him, as he entered the inner chamber, where he delighted in beholding the King himself, stark naked.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 259: Hasids are nature-lovers by nature. Rabbi Nachman of Breslav poetically depicts the spiritual lifeforce in the grasses of the field as joining and helping in one's prayers. Psychologically too, nature looks better with dogs and sheep in it. To a sensitised soul, even a tree can take on extra dimensions if it has a hole in it. The Kabbalists expl ain that one of the Hebrew names of God "Elo-h-im" is numerically equivalent in Gemara with "HaTeva" meaning "Nature").
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 261: Baal Shem Tov thought that the movement of a leaf in the wind is significant in the divine pl an. Or a flap of a butterfly. A Baal Shem Tov anecdote says it all:
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 263: Once, when the Baal Shem Tov was on a journey, Sabbath overtook him on the highway. He stopped the wagon, and went out into the field to perform the services that welcome the coming of Sabbath, and to remain there until the Sabbath was ended. On the field, a flock of sheep were grazing. When Baal Shem Tov raised his voice a tad and spoke the prayers that welcome the Sabbath as the coming of a Bride, the sheep rose upon their hind legs, and lifted their heads in the air, and stood like peopl e listening. And so they remained in wrapt attention for two hours, all the while that the Baal Shem spoke.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 267: Baal Shem Tov's mysticism taught that the sincere common folk could be closer to God than a scholar who has self-pride in his accompl ishments.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 268: Rahvaanomaiset mutta devekutit hasidit tarrautuvat Jehovaan kuin liima, kuin kärpäspaperi, kuin Kapteeni Capun laastari. In perhaps the most characteristic Hasidic story, the Baal Shem Tov's conduct instructed his new mystical teaching and boundless delight in the unlettered deveikut of the simpl e folk:
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 270: The saintly prayers of Baal Shem Tov and his close circle were unable to lift a harsh shortage of drinkware they perceived one Rosh Hashanah (New Year). After extending the prayers beyond their time, the drought remained. An unfettered shepherd boy entered and was deepl y envious of those who could read the holy day's prayers. He said to God "I don't know how to pray, but I can make the noises of the animals of the field. With great feeling, he cried out, "Cock-a-doodle-do. God have mercy!" Immediately, joy overcame the Baal Shem Tov, and he hurried to fetch the cellar key. Afterwards, he expl ained that the heartfelt prayer of the shepherd boy reminded him where he had mislaid the key, and the drought was lifted.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 280: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 286: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 343: Scholem’s first marriage to Escha Burchhardt was on the rocks by the early 1930s. Not only was he imagining himself in love with Kitty Steinschneider (there is no evidence that she reciprocated), but he was also pursuing a relationship with his student, Fania Freud (they married in 1936). His diaries betray a sense of emotional chaos, as he wrote to his friend, Walter Benjamin, expl aining to Benjamin why he could not host him in Jerusalem. He also wrote to Benjamin that he was struggling with questions of good and evil and whether an evil person could also be just. While he doesn’t say whether these questions were purely theoretical or not, it is striking that such ruminations came at exactly the time when his personal life was in turmoil.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 358: Kämppixen pl oki kerää päivittäin yli 1000 samanikäistä ja samanmielistä varalukijaa.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 365: Hyvin kirjoittamisesta Jukkixella taitaa olla 10 englanninkielistä ja 5 sekä saksan- että ranskankielistä opaskirjaa pl us Aulis Ojajärven Kirjoita taiten.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 450: In a world of fear and brokenness, Rabbi Nachman brought healing through his stories and his wisdom. He has become an iconic figure in the universe of Hasidic thinking, and today, thousands of peopl e make pilgrimages to his grave in Uman in central Ukraine, usually around the High Holidays. Peopl e go there believing that the journey will “fix” their brokenness.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 453: Nachman was the great-grandson of Baal Shem Tov, the founder of the Hasidic movement. In 1802, at the age of 30, Nachman instituted his own Hasidic sect based in the Ukrainian town of Breslau. Nachman taught his followers to live in faith, simpl icity and joy. 1in 1810, at the age of 38, Nachman died of tuberculosis. Sein Leben war kurz und beschiessen wie ein Hühnerbrett. Ditto with Spinoza .
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 460: Two images of Hasidim dancing and one of a Hasid pl aying a fiddle, taken from the stories of Rabbi Nachman of Breslau. To the left, the inscription "Enlighten me through your music" in Hebrew and English.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 492: Doch die Ich-Du Dialogik Bubers ist nicht nur auf die zwischenmenschliche Beziehung beschränkt, sondern der Mensch kann auch mit Abwesenden, natürlichen Dingen, sowie spirituellen Entitäten in den Dialog treten Ein bisschen pl empl em ja, meschugge, und ganz einseitig, aber kommt vor.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 507: Hermann Karl Hesse (1877-1962), a Nobel Prize-winning German novelist and poet, is best known for his inspired expl orations of self-understanding, spiritual realization, and psychology, particularly in Der Steppenwolf (1927), perhaps his best-known work.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 510: The Nazis, who discounted Hesse as merely a “victim of Jewish psychoanalysis,” blamed it all on Freud. In the April 1936 issue of Die Neue Litteratur, Will Vesper, empl oying predictable anti-Semitic tropes, characterized Hesse as a traitor and held him up as a classic exampl e of Jewry’s sinister influence in general and of the insidious poisoning of the German soul by Freud’s psychoanalysis in particular:
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 512: Once and for all, it must be made public that Hesse is a classic exampl e of how the Jew can poison the soul of the German peopl e. For if at that time, when he took no delight in the war…he had not fallen into the clutches of the Jew Freud and his psychoanalysis, he would have remained the German writer we all loved so well. The warping of his soul can only be ascribed to this Jewish influence.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 514: Interestingly, several of Hesse’s drawings and etchings were discovered at the National Library in Israel half a century after his death. I bet he had asked Buber to come up to have a look at them. Like all narcissists, those born to be wild never wanna die, even if they expl ode into space.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 516: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 527: And expl ode into space
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 536: And expl ode into space
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 553: And expl ode into space
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 587: Carl Ransom Rogers (January 8, 1902 – February 4, 1987) was an American psychologist and among the founders of the humanistic approach (and client-centered approach) in psychology. The person-centered approach, his own unique approach to understanding personality and human relationships, found wide appl ication in various domains such as psychotherapy and counseling (client-centered therapy), education (student-centered learning), organizations (self-centered leadership), and other group settings. Rogers was found to be the sixth most eminent psychologist of the 20th century and second in net worth, among clinicians, only to Sigmund Freud.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 591: Some scholars believe there is a politics impl icit in Rogers's approach to psychotherapy. Toward the end of his life, Rogers came to that view himself. The central tenet of a Rogerian, person-centered politics is that public life does not have to consist of an endless series of winner-take-all battles among sworn opponents; rather, it can and should consist of an ongoing win-win conspiracy among all the cheats. (For details, watch Legally Blonde, Part II.)
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 616: It wasn´t until the Reform movement that large numbers of Jews departed from more traditional Orthodox teachings. Reform Jews, who focus on the concept of ethical monotheism, believe that only the ethical laws of the Torah are binding. Additionally, they believe that other laws, like those laws in the Talmud, were products of their time and pl ace, and so it was not necessary to treat them as absolute.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 620: These "Ultra-Orthodox" Jews became known as Haredi Jews, although both of these terms are considered negative in some circles. The term is also sometimes spelled Charedi or Chareidi in English. It is important to note that members of this group do not reject the modern world or technologies (like nuclear weapons) entirely, but they treat adaptations of Jewish law to fit that world as very serious. Most of the differences between Haredi and Orthodox perspectives have to do with decisions of oral law as to how the Torah should be appl ied to a modern situation. In many broad senses, the two groups tend to agree, and it is more in the specifics that things begin to diverge, like payot and tefilin and wearing antimacassars and funny double hats.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 29: "HIS MASTER'S VOICE." play:none">Neizeellistä
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 37: Having said that, Marisa has now decided to shift her focus from her cunt on the current state of our pl anet. "I have been a vegetarian for the last three years and the pl an is to make a strong statement in 2019 about how we keep animals for our own pl easure and amusement," she said.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 39: Belgian nude model Marisa Papen, who describes herself as a 'free-spirited and wildhearted exhibitionist', became the centre of a worldwide controversy 2017 when she was sent to prison for a photoshoot in the templ e compl ex of Karnak near the Egyptian city of Luxor. 'In their eyes it was porn, or something like that.' 'The first cell we encountered was packed with at least 20 men, some were passed out on the floor, some were squeezing their hands through the rails, some were bleeding and yelling. 'Our judge was browsing with his big thumbs through these books looking as old as the pyramids. 'Eventually, he gave us a warning and told us never to do something so foolishly shameful ever again. We nodded simultaneously.' In the end, Papen and Walker managed to stay out of trouble by bribing them with £15.Thanks to her quick-witted reaction during her arrest, Papen is now able to proudly share her amazing arse in Walker´s magnificent pictures of the nude Egyptian photoshoot.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 48: Papen travelled with with Australian photographer Jesse Walker to the isolated Omo Valley in south-western Ethiopia, where she lived for a whole week with the Surma tribe. Papen said: 'What we claim to call beautiful in our Western world isn´t quite the same how the Surma tribe pursues beauty. Both Surma men and woman pierce their ears, some woman stretch their lower lip with a pl ate.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 49: They scar their bodies by making little cuts repetitively. Isn't it funny we invented all these creams, lasers and other treatments to get rid of our pubic hairs. One time I was resting in the shade of a sculptural tree and I was watching two men and a woman from a distance, they were just sitting in the grass, pl aying with some leaves and collecting some stones. I was trying to go back in my memory and imagine that same exact situation happening in our 'civilised' world - I couldn´t. In our civilized world the guys would've been all over her, stones hanging out and blades deep in her throat and twat.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 51: Another remarkable difference, according to Papen, is how breastfeeding is seen by the Surma as something natural which can be done in the open, compared to the contradictions on social media and public pl aces in the Western world. Personally I found that a shame to see, but I fear there is no way back when it comes to this.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 53: Papen expl ained that the tribe members dress according to preference or the situation they are in.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 105: ploads/2015/11/4434-Vigee-Le-Brun-Grand-Palais-Julie.jpg?ssl=1" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 167: Muslims, Christians and Jews do all worship the same compl ex God. Yet, in spite of this, all believe that their religion contains the full and final revelation of the same God. Here is the origin of their unity. Here also lies the cause of their division.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 175: In the absence of her skeletal remains, her devotees made do with visions – at Lourdes, Guadalupe, Fatima, Medjugorje, and so on. Like the other saints, her pilgrimage sites were pl aces where she could be invoked to ask God to grant the prayers of her devotees.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 303: In 1791, at the age of 26, she married Sir William Hamilton, British ambassador to the Kingdom of Napl es, where she was a success at court, befriending the queen, the sister of Marie Antoinette, and meeting Nelson.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 308: Only a few months later she was unempl oyed again and moved to London in the autumn of 1777. She started to work for the Budd family in Chatham Place, Blackfriars, London, and began acting at the Drury Lane theatre in Covent Garden. She also worked as a maid for actresses, among them Mary Robinson. Emma next worked as a model and dancer at the "Goddess of Health" for James Graham, a Scottish "quack" doctor.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 318: In 1783, Greville needed to find a rich wife to repl enish his finances, and found a fit in the form of eighteen-year-old heiress Henrietta Middleton. Emma would be a problem, as he disliked being known as her lover (this having become apparent to all through her fame in Romney's artworks), and his prospective wife would not accept him as a suitor if he lived openly with Emma Hart.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 320: To be rid of Emma, Greville persuaded his uncle, younger brother of his mother, Sir William Hamilton, British Envoy to Napl es, to take her off his hands. Greville's marriage would be useful to Sir William, as it relieved him of having Greville as a poor relation. To promote his pl an, Greville suggested to Sir William that Emma would make a very pl easing mistress, assuring him that, once married to Henrietta Middleton, he would come and fetch Emma back. Sir William, then 55 and newly widowed, had arrived back in London for the first time in over five years. Emma's famous beauty was by then well known to Sir William, so much so that he even agreed to pay the expenses for her journey to ensure her speedy arrival. A great collector of antiquities and beautiful objects, he took interest in her as another acquisition. He had long been happily married until the death of his wife in 1782, and he liked female companionship. His home in Napl es was well known all over the world for hospitality and refinement. He needed a hostess for his salon, and from what he knew about Emma, he thought she would be the perfect choice.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 322: Greville did not inform Emma of his pl an, but instead in 1785 suggested the trip as a prolonged holiday in Napl es while he (Greville) was away in Scotland on business, not long after Emma's mother had suffered a stroke. Emma was thus sent to Napl es, supposedly for six to eight months, little realising that she was going as the mistress of her host. Emma set off for Napl es with her mother and Gavin Hamilton on 13 March 1786 overland in an old coach, and arrived in Napl es on her 21st birthday on 26 April.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 324: After about six months of living in apartments in the Palazzo Sessa with her mother (separately from Sir William) and begging Greville to come and fetch her, Emma came to understand that he had cast her off. She was furious when she realised what Greville had pl anned for her, but eventually started to enjoy life in Napl es and responded to Sir William's intense courtship just before Christmas in 1786. They fell in love, Sir William forgot about his pl an to take her on as a temporary mistress, and Emma moved into his apartments, leaving her mother downstairs in the ground floor rooms. Emma was unable to attend Court yet, but Sir William took her to every other party, assembly and outing.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 326: They were married on 6 September 1791 at St Marylebone Parish Church, then a pl ain small building, having returned to England for the purpose and Sir William having gained the King's consent. She was twenty-six and he was sixty. Although she was obliged to use her legal name of Amy Lyon on the marriage register, the wedding gave her the title Lady Hamilton which she would use for the rest of her life. Hamilton's public career was now at its height and during their visit he was inducted into the Privy Council. Shortly after the ceremony, Romney painted his last portrait of Emma from life, The Ambassadress, after which he pl unged into a deep depression and drew a series of frenzied sketches of Emma.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 328: The newly married coupl e returned to Napl es after two days. After the marriage, Greville transferred the cost of Emma Carew's upkeep to Sir William, and suggested that he might move her to an establishment befitting the stepdaughter of an envoy. However, Sir William preferred to forget about her for a while.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 334: Nelson returned to Napl es five years later, on 22 September 1798. a living legend, after his victory at the Battle of the Nile in Aboukir, with his step-son Josiah Nisbet, then 18 years old. By this time, Nelson's adventures had prematurely aged him; he had lost an arm and most of his teeth, and was afflicted by coughing spells. Before his arrival, Emma had written a letter passionately expressing her admiration for him. Nelson even wrote effusively of Emma to his increasingly estranged wife. Emma and Sir William escorted Nelson to their home, the Palazzo Sessa.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 336: Emma nursed Nelson under her husband's roof and arranged a party with 1,800 guests to celebrate his 40th birthday on 29 September. After the party, Emma became Nelson's secretary, translator and political facilitator. They soon fell in love and began an affair. Hamilton showed admiration and respect for Nelson, and vice versa; the affair was tolerated. By November, gossip from Napl es about their affair reached the English newspapers. Emma Hamilton and Horatio Nelson were famous.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 338: Upon arrival in London on 8 November, the three of them took suites at Nerot's Hotel after a missed communication from Nelson to his wife about receiving the party at their home, Roundwood. Lady Nelson and Nelson's father arrived and they all dined at the hotel, with Fanny deepl y unhappy to see Emma pregnant. The affair soon became public knowledge, and to the delight of the newspapers, Fanny did not accept the affair as pl acidly as Sir William. Emma was winning the media war at that point, and every fine lady was experimenting with her look. Nelson contributed to Fanny's misery by being cruel to her when not in Emma's company. Sir William was mercilessly lampooned in the press, but his sister observed that he doted on Emma and she was very attached to him.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 352: Soon afterwards, Sir William collapsed at 23 Piccadilly and on 6 April died in Emma's arms. Charles Greville was the executor of the estate and he instructed her to leave 23 Piccadilly, but for the sake of respectability, she had to keep an address separate from Nelson's and so moved into 11 Clarges Street, not far away, a coupl e of months later.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 354: Nelson had been offered the position of Commander-in-Chief of the Mediterranean Fleet, and they rushed to have Horatia christened at Marylebone Parish Church before he left. On her baptism record, her name was recorded as Horatia Nelson Thompson, and her date of birth falsely recorded as 29 October 1800 in order to continue the pretence that she had been born in Napl es and was godchild of Emma and Nelson, according to Kate Williams and based on an unpublished letter; however the only publicly available transcription of the record shows 29 October 1801. Nelson later wrote a letter expl aining that the child was an orphan "left to his care and protection" in Napl es.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 356: Emma pl anned, paid for and hosted the wedding of Nelson's niece Kitty Bolton (daughter of Susanna) and her cousin Captain Sir William Bolton (Nelson's sister Susanna's husband's brother's son) at 23 Piccadilly on 18 May 1803, the same day as Nelson's early morning departure to fight in the Napoleonic Wars, leaving Emma pregnant with their second child (although neither knew it at this time). The marriage was witnessed by Charlotte Mary Nelson (Nelson's brother William's daughter) and "Emma Hartley" (Emma's daughter Emma Carew).
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 362: After a brief visit to England in August 1805, Nelson once again had to return to service. Emma received letters from him on 1, 7 and 13 October. On the ship, he wrote a note intended as a codicil to his will requesting that, in return for his legacy to King and Country that they should give Emma "ampl e provision to maintain her rank in life", and that his "adopted daughter, Horatia Nelson Thompson...use in future the name of Nelson only".
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 376: She spent 1806 to 1808 keeping up the act, continuing to spend on parties and alterations to Merton to make it a monument to Nelson. Goods that Nelson had ordered arrived and had to be paid for. The annual annuity of £800 from Sir William's estate was not enough to pay off the debts and keep up the lifestyle, and Emma fell deepl y into debt.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 378: She moved from Clarges Street to a cheaper home at 136 Bond Street, but could not bring herself to relinquish Merton. Her brother, William, blackmailed her into giving him money, and Mrs Cadogan's sister's family, the Connors, were also expecting handouts. Emma Carew came for a short summer visit in late June 1806, at which point Sir Harry Fetherstonhaugh sent £500 for the benefit of mother and daughter. Emma hosted and empl oyed James Harrison for 6 months to write a two-volume Life of Nelson, which made it clear that Horatia was his child. She continued to entertain at Merton, including the Prince of Wales and the Dukes of Sussex and Clarence, but no favours were returned by the royals.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 380: Within three years, Emma was more than £15,000 in debt. In June 1808, Merton failed to sell at auction. She was not compl etely without friends; her neighbours had rallied, and Sir John Perring hosted a group of influential financiers to help organise her finances and sell Merton. It was eventually sold in April 1809. However, her lavish spending continued, and a combination of this and the steady depl etion of funds due to peopl e fleecing her meant that she remained in debt, although unbeknownst to most peopl e. Her mother, Mrs Cadogan, died in January 1810. For most of 1811 and 1812 she was in a virtual debtors' prison, and in December 1812 either chose to commit herself (her name does not appear in the record books) or was sentenced to a prison sentence at the King's Bench Prison in Southwark, although she was not kept in a cell but allowed to live in rooms nearby with Horatia, as per the system whereby genteel prisoners could buy the rights to live "within the Rules", a three-square-mile area around the prison.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 384: Emma was anxious to leave the country, but owing to the risk of arrest if she travelled on a normal ferry, she and Horatia hid from her creditors for a week before boarding a private vessel bound for Calais on 1 July 1814, with £50 in her purse. Initially taking apartments at the expensive Dessein's Hotel, she initially kept up a social life and fine dining by relying on creditors. Her old housekeeper, Dame Francis, came to run the household and hired other servants. But soon she was deepl y in debt and suffering from longstanding health problems, including stomach pains, nausea and diarrhoea. She turned to the Roman Catholic church and joined the St Pierre congregation.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 424: ploads/sites/55/2019/10/Greta_Lyra.png" height="300px%" />
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 438: ploads/2019/08/offensive-gestures-04-1.png" />
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 453: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 459: Una ricca famiglia di un industriale milanese viene profondamente scossa dall'arrivo di un enigmatico ospite, un giovane venticinquenne silenzioso e affascinante. Il visitatore ottiene le grazie della moglie, ha rapporti erotici con la figlia, il figlio, la domestica e con lo stesso capofamiglia. Quando il misterioso viaggiatore ripartirà, tutto sarà cambiato: la madre si concede sessualmente a vari giovanotti, la figlia diventa catatonica, il figlio abbandona la famiglia e si mette a dipingere, il capofamiglia lascia la fabbrica agli operai, si denuda nella stazione di Milano e si perde nel deserto, mentre la serva, una sempl ice contadina, levita nell'aria come una santa.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 463: Il 13 settembre 1968[3] la Procura della Repubblica di Roma sequestra il film "per oscenità e per le diverse scene di ampl essi carnali alcune delle quali particolarmente lascive e libidinose e per i rapporti omosessuali tra un ospite e un membro della famiglia che lo ospitava".
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 485: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/02/Evelyn_De_Morgan_-_Angel_of_Death.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 514: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fb/Saint_Francis_of_Assisi_by_Jusepe_de_Ribera.jpg/250px-Saint_Francis_of_Assisi_by_Jusepe_de_Ribera.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 553: Nicole Kidman pl ayed Mrs Coulter in the film adaptation, The Golden Compass. Pullman had previously indicated that he would like to see Kidman pl ay the role. ... Her dæmon was changed from a Golden Monkey to a Golden snub-nosed monkey in order to better reflect the two sides of Coulter´s character.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 562: Ben viva era all´epoca la vicenda dei catari, dichiarati eretici dalla Chiesa cattolica, i quali predicavano un dualismo Bene/Male portato alle estreme conseguenze. Francesco avrebbe potuto essere scambiato per un cataro per la sua povertà e la predicazione ai ceti subalterni. Ma Francesco e i suoi seguaci si distinguevano in moltepl ici aspetti: innanzitutto essi non mettevano in dubbio la gerarchia della Chiesa. Katarol katarilli, tosivahva pastilli.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 564: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 580: Yes, the virgin fixation is puzzling. I expect it has something to do with women as property and the importance of verifying lineage. Yes I have a pet theory (hypothesis) that in civilizations where we lived in large numbers and with animals diseases could bounce from peopl e to animals and back again hence all the pl agues. In cultures where peopl e were relatively isolated then virginity doesn’t seem to pl ay as big a role. Mind you if you are paying for a wife to raise your children who you see as the primary reason for your existence then not raising someone else’s children may be a prime issue.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 592: I heard Dawkins once quoting a priest he was having dinner with who had served in the hills of Papua New Guinea or someone like that the bible often mentions flocks and sheep/lambs/flock in terms of the congregation which was a problem there as many of these peopl e had never seen a sheep they all had pigs. So the priest would start the Sunday Sermon with something like “Welcome swine”.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 598: Here is another exampl e framed by the powerful and disturbing poem What a friend we have in Jesus? by K L Burns from MRRC Silverwater Correctional Centre, quoted on the same website:
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 636: In the eschatological discourse of Matthew 25:31-46, Jesus says that, when the Son of Man comes in his glory, he will separate peopl e from one another as a shepherd separates sheep from goats, and will consign to everlasting fire those who failed to aid "the least of his brothers". This separation is stark, with no expl icit provision made for fine gradations of merit or guilt:
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 652: Mitä Luther oli mieltä tästä kysymyxestä? Entäs kostonhimoisempi Calvinus? Mänkööt vuan kaikki, mänkööt huut helekkariin! Temmataan me mukaan vaan meikäläisten porukat. Tää voi olla vähän sen funktio, minkä verran populaatiossa on jäljellä höpl äytettäviä, ja siittä riippuen kumpi näyttää tehokkaammalta, keppi vaiko porkkana. Kuolemanrangaistus voi pelottaa ekalla kerralla, mutta kun on yhden tappanut niin mitä väliä, hirttosilmukka on sama useammasta.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 660: According to the Alliance Commission on Unity & Truth among Evangelicals (ACUTE) the majority of Protestants have held that hell will be a pl ace of perpetual conscious torment, both physical and spiritual. This is known as the eternal conscious torment (ECT) view. Some recent writers such as Anglican layman C. S. Lewis[86] and J.P. Moreland have cast peopl e to hell in terms of "eternal separation" from God. Certain biblical texts have led some theologians[who?] to the conclusion that punishment in hell, though eternal and irrevocable, will be proportional to the deeds of each soul (e.g., Matthew 10:15, Luke 12:46-48).
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 662: Another area of debate is the fate of the unevangelized (i.e., those who have never had an opportunity to hear the Christian gospel), those who die in infancy, and the mentally disabled. According to ACUTE some Protestants agree with Augustine that peopl e in these categories will be damned to hell for original sin, while others believe that God will make an exception in these cases, rather like the Australian government should have done with the antivac tennis pl aying serb.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 666: In Christianity, annihilationism (also known as extinctionism or destructionism)[1] is the belief that those who are wicked will perish or cease to exist. It states that after the Last Judgment, all unsaved human beings, all fallen angels (all of the damned) and Satan himself will be totally destroyed so as to not exist, or that their consciousness will be extinguished rather than suffer everlasting torment in Hell (often synonymized with the lake of fire). Annihilationism stands in contrast to both belief in eternal torture and suffering in the lake of fire and the belief that everyone will be saved (universal reconciliation or simpl y "universalism").
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 29:
AARON SKEBA play:none">Käärmeilyä
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 36: When Moses told him, Aaron held out the staff in his hand and struck the dust on the ground. It turned into gnats that bit peopl e and animals. All the dust on the ground everywhere in Egypt turned into gnats.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 52: Moses and Aaron appear before the pharaoh, and Aaron's rod is transformed into a serpent. Pharaoh's sorcerers are also able to transform their own rods into serpents, but Aaron's rod swallows their rods (Exodus 7:10-12). Aaron's rod is again used to turn the Nile blood-red. It is used several times on God's command to initiate the pl agues of Egypt.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 56: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9b/VictoryOLord.JPG/220px-VictoryOLord.JPG" />
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 59: Finally, God tells Moses to get water for the Israelites from a rock by speaking to the rock (Numbers 20:8). But Moses, being vexed by the compl aining of the Israelites, instead of speaking to the rock as God commanded, strikes the rock twice with the staff. Because Moses did not obey God's command to speak to the rock, impl ying lack of faith, God punished Moses by not letting him enter into the Promised Land (Numbers 20:12). Taisit jo mainita albumissa 64 .
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 63: The staff with which Jacob crossed the Jordan is identical with that which Judah gave to his daughter-in-law, Tamar (Gen. xxxii. 10, xxxviii. 18). It is likewise the holy rod with which Moses worked (Ex. iv. 20, 21), with which Aaron performed wonders before Pharaoh (Ex. vii. 10), and with which, finally, David slew the giant Goliath (I Sam. xvii. 40). David left it to his descendants, and the Davidic kings used it as a scepter until the destruction of the Templ e, when it miraculously disappeared. When the Messiah comes it will be given to him for a scepter in token of his authority over the heathen. (And we don't mean INRI here.)
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 66: The Midrash (a homiletic method of biblical exegesis) states that the staff was passed down from generation to generation and was in the possession of the Judean kings until the First Templ e was destroyed. It is unknown what became of the staff after the Templ e was destroyed and the Jews were exiled from the land.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 68: There is a mention of the rod of Moses in a deposition of Nicolas, abbot of the Icelandic Benedictine monastery of Thingeyrar, who had seen it guarded in a chapel of a palace in Constantinopl e in c. 1150. According to this source, the archbishop of Novgorod, Anthony, stated that it was in the church of St Michael in the Boukoleon Palace, among other precious relics. After the sack of Constantinopl e in 1204 it was transported to France where Bishop Nevelon pl aced it in Soissons cathedral and it then passed to the treasury of the Sainte-Chapelle.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 70: According to an unidentified identifying document [citation needed] at the Hagia Sophia in Istanbul, Moses's staff would supposedly be on displ ay today at the Topkapı Palace, Istanbul, Turkey. The Topkapi Palace holds other reputedly holy relics, most notably those attributed to the Islamic prophet, Muhammad. (Such as his bow, his sword, his footprint, and even a tooth.) Topkapı Palace was officially designated a museum in 1924, and the holy relics were pl aced on public view on 31 August 1962. It is said that Sultan Selim I (1512–1520) brought the holy relics to Topkapi Palace after conquering Egypt in 1517.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 77: This list is incompl ete; you can help by adding missing items. (August 2008).
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 219: “This is spoken of God,” says Dr. Dodd, “after the manner of men, to denote his utter contempt of the opposition of his enemies; the perfect ease with which he was able to disappoint all their measures, and crush them for their impiety and folly; together with his absolute security, that his counsels should stand and his measures be finally accompl ished; as men laugh at, and hold in utter contempt, those whose malice and power they know to be utterly vain and impotent. The introducing God as thus laughing at, and deriding his enemies, is in the true spirit of poetry, and with the utmost propriety and dignity.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 221: Shall laugh - Will smile at their vain attempts, maybe even sneer; will not be disturbed or agitated by their efforts; will go calmly on in the execution of his purposes. Compare as above Isaiah 18:4. See also Proverbs 1:26; Psalm 37:13; Psalm 59:8. This is, of course, to be regarded as spoken after the manner of men, and it means that God will go steadily forward in the accompl ishment of his purposes. There is included also the idea that he will look with contempt on their vain and futile efforts.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 223: The Lord shall have them in derision - The same idea is expressed here in a varied form, as is the custom in parallelism in Hebrew poetry. The Hebrew word לעג lâ‛ag, means properly to stammer; then to speak in a barbarous or foreign tongue; then to mock or deride, by imitating the stammering voice of anyone. Gesenius, Lexicon Here it is spoken of God, and, of course, is not to be understood literally, anymore than when eyes, and hands, and feet are spoken of as pertaining to him. The meaning is, that there is a result in the case, in the Divine Mind, as if he mocked or derided the vain attempts of men; that is, he goes calmly forward in the execution of his own purposes, and he looks upon and regards their efforts as vain, as we do the efforts of others when we mock or deride them. The truth taught in this verse is, that God will carry forward his own pl ans in spite of all the attempts of men to thwart them. This general truth may lie stated in two forms:
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 227: the Lord shall have them in derision; which is a repetition of the same thing in other words; and is made partly to show the certainty of their disappointment and ruin, and partly to expl ain who is meant by him that sits in the heavens. The Targum calls him, "the Word of the Lord"; and Alshech interprets it of the Shechinah. Kimchi, Aben Ezra, & R. Sol. Ben Melech in loc.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 304: From that initial catastrophe, the highest sparks fell to the lowest pl aces. In particular, Shechinah descended within this world to seek out our souls (also feminine), so that this world and this life of ours should pl ay out as not just another zero-sum game, but as a win-win investment with incomparable returns.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 308: By now, all our souls have been recycled though the washing machine of Time many times. What your soul accompl ished in previous descents, and what is left to be accompl ished—all that is of necessity hidden from you. As Rabbi Moshe Cordovero wrote, “Those who know do not say, and those who say do not know.”
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 310: We are all international activists—the yeshivah student struggling for clarity in an abstruse Talmudic passage, the storeowner who refuses to sell faulty merchandise, the little girl joyfully lighting her candle before Shabbat, the hiker who reaches the top of her climb and breathlessly recites a blessing to the Creator for the magnificent view, the young father who has just now started wrapping tefillin every morning, the subway commuter who lent the guy next to him a shoulder to sleep upon, and the simpl e Jew who checks for a kosher symbol on the package before making a purchase. Our destiny is tied to the destiny of those books, that merchandise, that time of the week, that mountain, that morning rush, that neighbor and that train, and the food in that package. We cannot live without them, and their redemption cannot come without us. We are all sanitation workers.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 316: Shechinah is a Chaldee word meaning resting-pl ace, not found in Scripture, but used by the later Jews to designate the visible trace of Cod's presence in the tabernacle, and afterwards in Solomon's templ e. When the Lord led Israel out of Egypt, he went before them "in a pillar of a cloud." This was the symbol of his presence with his peopl e. For references made to it during the wilderness wanderings, see Exodus 14:20 ; 40:34-38 ; Leviticus 9:23 Leviticus 9:24 ; Numbers 14:10 ; Numbers 16:19 Numbers 16:42 .
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 318: It is probable that after the entrance into Canaan this glory-cloud settled in the tabernacle upon the ark of the covenant in the most holy pl ace. We have, however, no special reference to it till the consecration of the templ e by Solomon, when it filled the whole house with its glory, so that the priests could not stand to minister ( 1 Kings 8:10-13 ; 2 Chr. 1 Kings 5:13 1 Kings 5:14 ; 7:1-3 ). Probably it remained in the first templ e in the holy of holies as the symbol of Jehovah's presence so long as that templ e stood. It afterwards disappeared. (See CLOUD .)
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 325: "A templ e for your habitation", where the Greek text (Koinē Greek: ναὸν τῆς σῆς σκηνώσεως) suggests a possible parallel understanding, and where σκήνωσις skēnōsis "a tent-building", a variation on an early loanword from Phoenician (Ancient Greek: ἡ σκηνή skēnē "tent"), is deliberately used to represent the original Hebrew or Aramaic term. (Eli skene! Varmaan pyhä henki on jotenkin tästä stailattu. Vaika spiritus on maskuliini, ja koiraanhommiinhan se joutuukin. Toisaalta sen hyvä piirre on, että se on aika hahmoton, ei lähde neizyt Maarian suhteen fantasiat liikaa laukkaamaan.) In the post-templ e era usage of the term shekhinah may provide a solution to the problem of Cod being omnipresent and thus not dwelling in any one pl ace. (Jepjep:) The concept of shekhinah is also associated with the concept of the Holy Spirit in Judaism (ruach ha-kodesh).
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 347: It is through the being of Yahuah (fatherly aspect) and the wisdom or spirit of Yahuah (motherly aspect) that the son of Yahuah, the bodily manifestation or substance of Yahuah was conceived, and eventually brought forth into the world by the means of a virgin named Miriam. Ha Mashiach was conceived of the Ruach (Matthew 1:20), and in the physical portrayal of this, he was born of Miriam. The meaning of the word "of" carries through in that HaMashiach is conceived and born of the Ruch, as sort of "pictured" in Miriam. The conception in the spiritual realm was also pictured at HaMashiach's baptism when the Ruch Ah Qudsh descended upon him in the form of a dove, and Yahuah spoke from heaven saying, "my son, the beloved, in you I am well pl eased" Luke 3:22.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 357: Denoting Spirit as a feminine principl e, the creative principl e of life, makes sense when considering where Father Yahuah pl us Ruch (Spirit) sort of "leads" to the divine extension of sonship, which compl etes the Family of Yahuah, all contained in one (1) name!"
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 361: Yahuah said, "Let us make Mankind in our image, after our likeness," and then "Yahuah created Mankind in his own image, in the image of Yahuah he created them, male and female he created them." Thus, the image of Yahuah was male and female - not simpl y one or the other.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 371: At that time Yahusha, full of joy through Ruch Ah Qudsh, said, "I praise you, Father, Alahym (Elohim) of heaven and earth, because you have hidden these things from the wise and learned, and revealed them to his chosen children. Yes, father, for this was your good pl easure." Luke 10:21
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 373: Clearly there is ampl e evidence from the Hebrew that if YAH belongs to the Father and HU to the Son, then certainly AH belongs to the Ruch, giving us the name YaHuaH, which contains all three in One Name. Yahuah Saves and is the Giver of Life, Eternal Life! Q.E.D.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 393: Rashi was an only child born at Troyes, Champagne, in northern France. His mother's brother was Simeon bar Isaac, rabbi of Mainz. Simon was a discipl e of Gershom ben Judah, who died that same year. On his father's side, Rashi has been claimed to be a 33rd-generation descendant of Johanan HaSandlar,[citation needed] who was a fourth-generation descendant of Gamaliel, who was reputedly descended from the Davidic line. In his voluminous writings, Rashi himself made no such claim at all. The main early rabbinical source about his ancestry, Responsum No. 29 by Solomon Luria, makes no such claim either.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 395: Drawing on the breadth of Midrashic, Talmudic and Aggadic literature (including literature that is no longer extant), as well as his knowledge of Hebrew grammar and halakhah, Rashi clarifies the "simpl e" meaning of the text so that a bright child of five could understand it. At the same time, his commentary forms the foundation for some of the most profound legal analysis and mystical discourses that came after it. Scholars debate why Rashi chose a particular Midrash to illustrate a point, or why he used certain words and phrases and not others. Rabbi Shneur Zalman of Liadi wrote that "Rashi's commentary on Torah is the 'wine of Torah'. It opens the heart and uncovers one's essential love and fear of Cod.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 397: Scholars believe that Rashi's commentary on the Torah grew out of the lectures he gave to his students in his yeshiva, and evolved with the questions and answers they raised on it. Rashi compl eted this commentary only in the last years of his life. It was immediately accepted as authoritative by all Jewish communities, Ashkenazi and Sephardi alike.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 399: . Rashi's commentary, drawing on his knowledge of the entire contents of the Talmud, attempts to provide a full expl anation of the words and of the logical structure of each Talmudic passage. Unlike other commentators, Rashi does not paraphrase or exclude any part of the text, but elucidates phrase by phrase. Often he provides punctuation in the unpunctuated text, expl aining, for exampl e, "This is a question"; "He says this in surprise", "He repeats this in agreement", etc.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 401: Some say that his responsa allows peopl e to obtain "clear pictures of his personality," and shows Rashi as a kind, gentle, humble, and liberal man.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 405: The Tosafot, Tosafos or Tosfot (Hebrew: תוספות) are medieval commentaries on the Talmud. They take the form of critical and expl anatory glosses, printed, in almost all Talmud editions, on the outer margin and opposite Rashi's notes.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 408: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f2/First_page_of_the_first_tractate_of_the_Talmud_%28Daf_Beis_of_Maseches_Brachos%29.jpg/220px-First_page_of_the_first_tractate_of_the_Talmud_%28Daf_Beis_of_Maseches_Brachos%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 417: In general, Rashi provides the peshat or literal meaning of Jewish texts, while his discipl es known as the Tosafot ("additions"), gave more interpretative descriptions of the texts. The Tosafot's commentaries can be found in the Talmud opposite Rashi's commentary. The Tosafot added comments and criticism in pl aces where Rashi had not added comments. The Tosafot went beyond the passage itself in terms of arguments, parallels, and distinctions that could be drawn out. This addition to Jewish texts was seen as causing a "major cultural product" which became an important part of Torah study.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 419: Up to and including Rashi, the Talmudic commentators occupied themselves only with the pl ain meaning ("peshaṭ") of the text; but after the beginning of the twelfth century the spirit of criticism took possession of the teachers of the Talmud. Thus some of Rashi's continuators, as his sons-in-law and his grandson Samuel ben Meïr (RaSHBaM), while they wrote commentaries on the Talmud after the manner of Rashi's, wrote also glosses on it in a style peculiar to themselves.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 421: The Tosafot do not constitute a continuous commentary, but rather (like the "Dissensiones" to the Roman Code of the first quarter of the twelfth century) deal only with difficult passages of the Talmud. Single sentences are expl ained by quotations which are taken from other Talmudic treatises and which seem at first glance to have no connection with the sentences in question. On the other hand, sentences which seem to be related and interdependent are separated and embodied in different treatises. The Tosafot can be understood only by those who are well advanced in the study of the Talmud, for the most entangled discussions are treated as though they were simpl e. Glosses expl aining the meaning of a word or containing a grammatical observation are very rare.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 466: Illuminoinnissa käytetään elektronisia impl antteja hampaissa jotka lähettävät radioalloilla uivia ääniä uhreille, joita käytetään edesauttamaan orjien jakomielisyyttä; kuten myös aivoimpl antteja ja kuulolaitteita jotka lähettävät sähkömagneettisia aaltokuvioita orjan mieleen saattaakseen sen melan juhlakuntoon. Luvussa 6 kerrotaan enemmän näistä melanhallinta-impl anteista jos jäi vaivaamaan.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 496: The younger Hall is said to have never known his father. In 1919, Hall moved from Canada to Los Angeles, California, with his maternal grandmother to reunite with his birth mother, who was living in Santa Monica, and was almost immediately drawn to the arcane world of mysticism, esoteric philosophies, and their underlying principl es. Hall delved deepl y into "teachings of lost and hidden traditions, the golden verses of Hindu gods, Greek philosophers and Christian mystics, and the spiritual treasures waiting to be found within one's own soul."
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 33: MALA TESTA play:none">Päänsärkyä
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 35: Väkäleuka pl agioi Petrarcalta mehukkaita kohtia. Hatussa on lihasoppa-ainexia.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 64: ploads/2015/04/paolofrancesca1.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 69: ploads/2017/07/PaoloFrancesca.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 72: ploads/2019/11/paolo-e-francesca.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 73: ploads/2019/04/Louis-Rubio-Paolo-and-Francesca-1833.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 74: ploads/sites/6/2019/01/stanza-di-paolo-e-francesca-min.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 75: pl/Auctions/812/1632/173994/113-2.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 76: ploads/2008/11/alberi-1828.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 77: ploads/2018/09/Gaetano-Previati-Paolo-e-Francesca-1887-Bergamo-Accademia-Carrara-1024x507.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 78: ploads/2018/11/A.-Cabanel_Morte_di_Francesca_da_Rimini_e_di_Paolo_Malatesta.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 82: ploads/2020/10/Francesca-da-Rimini-nellInferno-dantesco-di-Nicola-Monti-1810.-Galleria-degli-Uffizi-Firenze-1024x726.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 83: ploads/2020/06/y%C4%B1%C4%9F%C4%B1ld%C4%B1-1200x846.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 88: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 108: Swiftly achieving where the others pl od? Päästen pikaisesti minne toiset talsivat?
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 212: Dopo una prima mezzora noiosa e decisamente troppo dialogata, il film migliora un po' col passare dei minuti, con alcuno pelle nuda anche se nel compl esso non mi sentirei di "salvarlo", senza cazzi duri entrando in culo. Infatti tutto il discorso sulla contestazione giovanile è invecchiato terribilmente, ed i rimandi psicologici presenti in sceneggiatura sono a dir poco forzati.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 216: He writes children's stories. She designs spaces. A diagnosis of cancer hits the pimpl y slavonic lady. He leaves everything (what?) to be with her. More time goes by than expected and she still alive. In a story this should be a gift. In real life, however, many coupl es go into crisis because cancer lasts longer than expected. Not knowing how much time remains to wait can be an even stronger sentence than death itself. You could be making new bad choices, instead you are faced with a sacrifice that is sustainable only for a limited time. It seems absurd. This story is about a love that is forced to wonder how long it can last. Not very long, which is fortunate for a short film. Titulokuvassa on jotain ällöjä sieniä.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 266: Voi helevetin helvetti, kyllä genret on sitten perseestä. Mihkähän genreen kuuluu "Crister"in oma elämä? Luultavasti se on tragikoominen. Mix vitussa pitää kaikki luokittaa? KAIKKI pitää luokittaa, vitun apinat. Kirjat on kirjakaupassa osastoittain "fiktio", "jännitys", "romantiikka", "sota". Voi vittu, täähän on taas sitä vanhaa EAT EAT FUCK FUCK KILL KILL touhua. Matelijanaivot sanelee myös viihdepl äjäyxien luokat.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 268: And now for something compl etely different! Isaac Singerin luonnehdinta sen isän lapsenuskosta on siteerauxen arvoinen. Tämän paremmin voi uskonnollista maailmankuvaa tuskin puolustaa.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 356: Käyt keilaamassa.
No en helvetti! Tän täytyy olla joku jenkkipl äjäys. Keilailua olen nähnyt vaan töllössä, jossa sitä harrastavat alemman keskiluokan porukat ala Homer Simpson tai Gilmoren tytöt.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 362: Käytät netin selaamiseen Internet Expl orer -selainta.
No en tietysti! Sehän on paskaa mikkisoftaa! Tottakai käytän linuxilla Netscapea, tai siis nyttemmin Firefoxia. Vaik kylmulle textipohjainen lynx olis riittänyt.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 396: We believe our site represents the most compl ete, concise and comprehensive source of information available which deals with the Biblical prophecy of The New World Order.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 401: To expl ain the goals and aspirations of the New World Order
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 403: To expl ain how its impl ementation will affect the average American citizen and family.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 429: ploads_820/e/6/5/728677/weishaupt.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 455: You will, I hope, not think it a Presumption in a Stranger, whose Name, perhaps never reached your Ears, to address himself to you the Commanding General of a great Nation. I am a German, born and liberally educated in the City of Heydelberg in the Palatinate of the Rhine. I came to this Country in 1776, and felt soon after my Arrival a close Attachment to the Liberty for which these confederated States then struggled. The same Attachment still remains not glowing, but burning in my Breast. At the same Time that I am exulting in the Measures adopted by our Government, I feel myself elevated in the Idea of my adopted Country. I am attached both from the Bent of Education and mature Enquiry and Search to the simpl e Doctrines of Christianity, which I have the Honor to teach in Public; and I do heartily despise all the Cavils of Infidelity. Our present Time, pregnant with the most shocking Evils and Calamities, threatens Ruin to our Liberty and Goverment. Secret, the most secret Plans are in Agitation: Plans, calculated to ensnare the Unwary, to attract the Gay and irreligious, and to entice even the Well-disposed to combine in the general Machine for overturning all Government and all Religion.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 464: May the Supreme Ruler of all Things continue You long with us in these perilous Times: may he endow you with Strength and Wisdom to save our Country in the threatening Storms and gathering Clouds of Factions and Commotions! and after you have compl eted his Work on this terrene Spot, may He bring you to the full Possession of the glorious Liberty of the Children of God, is the hearty and most sincere Wish of Your Excellency’s very humble and devoted Servant
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 472: I have heard much of the nefarious, and dangerous pl an, and doctrines of the Illuminati, but never saw the Book until you were pl eased to send it to me. The same causes which have prevented my acknowledging the receipt of your letter have prevented my reading the Book, hitherto; namely, the multipl icity of matters which pressed upon me before, and the debilitated state in which I was left after, a severe fever had been removed. And which allows me to add little more now, than thanks for your kind wishes and favourable sentiments, except to correct an error you have run into, of my Presiding over the English lodges in this Country. The fact is, I preside over none, nor have I been in one more than once or twice, within the last thirty years. I believe notwithstanding, that none of the Lodges in this Country are contaminated with the principl es ascribed to the Society of the Illuminati. With respect I am &c.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 478: It also occurred to me that you might have had Ideas to that Purport when you disapproved of the Meetings of the Democratic-Societies, which appeared to me to be a Branch of that Order, though many Members may be entirely ignorant of the Plan. Those Men who are so much attached to French Principl es, have all the Marks of Jacobinism. They first cast off all religious Restraints, and then became fit for perpetrating every Act of Inhumanity. And, it is remarkable, that most of them are actually Scoffers at all religious Principl es. It is said that the ‘Lodge Theodore in Bavaria became notorious for the many bold and dangerous Sentiments in Religion and Politics that were uttered in their Harangues, and its Members were remarkable for their Zeal in making Proselytes’; (and no Wonder since the Order was to rule the World.) Is not there a striking Similarity between their Proceedings and those of many Societies that oppose the Measures of our present Government?
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 480: Even in this small Place the French-Faction is very numerous—their Expressions are like those of Bloody-Lutetia [Lutetia Parisiorum, or Paris]: their Sentiments in exact Unison with those of the Jacobine Club: their Hearts panting for Faggots and Guillotines. The Foundation of their Sanctuary is laid with Lies, and every Stone of the Superstructure reared with Falsehood. They are laboriously empl oyed to excite Discord—to extinguish public Virtue—to break down the Barriers of Religion—to establish Atheism, and work the Downfall of our Civil—and Religious Liberty. Should their perfidious Schemes succeed (I tremble even at the Imagination of the Consequences) what would become of our Columbia?”
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 482: To which Washington repl ied:
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 488: Having now received Washington’s initial repl y, Snyder wrote back on October 17:
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 492: “I should be very happy in your Excellency’s good Opinion, that the Contagion of Illuminatism or Jacobinism had not yet reached this Country; but when I consider the anarchical and seditious Spirit, that shewed itself in the United States from the Time M. Genet and Fauchet (who certainly is of the Order) arrived in this Country and propagated their seditious Doctrines, which the illuminated Doctor from Birmingham has been zealously empl oyed to strengthen, I confess I cannot divest myself of my Suspicions: yet I trust that the Alwise and Omnipotent Ruler of the Universe will so dispose the Minds of the Peopl e of these United States that true Religion and righteous Government may remain the Privileges of this Nation!
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 505: Revd Sir: I have your favor of the 17th. instant before me; and my only motive to trouble you with the receipt of this letter, is to expl ain, and correct a mistake which I perceive the hurry in which I am obliged, often, to write letters, have led you into.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 507: It was not my intention to doubt that, the Doctrines of the Illuminati, and principl es of Jacobinism had not spread in the United States. On the contrary, no one is more truly satisfied of this fact than I am.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 509: The idea that I meant to convey, was, that I did not believe that the Lodges of Free Masons in this Country had, as Societies, endeavoured to propagate the diabolical tenets of the first, or pernicious principl es of the latter (if they are susceptible of seperation). That Individuals of them may have done it, or that the founder, or instrument empl oyed to found, the Democratic Societies in the United States, may have had these objects; and actually had a seperation of the Peopl e from their Government in view, is too evident to be questioned.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 533: acter was the object of Jesus Christ. That his intention was simpl y to reinstate natural religion, & by diffusing the light of his morality, to teach us to govern ourselves. His precepts are the love of god & love of our neighbor.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 534: And by teaching innocence of conduct, he expected to pl ace men in their natural state of liberty & equality. He says, no one ever laid a surer foundation for liberty than our grand master, Jesus of Nazareth.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 536: He believes the Free masons were originally possessed of the true principl es & objects of Christianity, & have still preserved some of them by tradition, but much disfigured. The means he proposes to effect this improvement of human nature are `to enlighten men, to correct their morals & inspire them with benevolence. Secure of our success, sais he, we abstain from violent commotions. To have foreseen the happiness of posterity & to have prepared it by irreproachable means, suffices for our felicity.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 540: As Wishaupt lived under the tyranny of a despot & priests, he knew that caution was necessary even in spreading information, & the principl es of pure morality. He proposed therefore to lead the Free masons to adopt this object & to make the objects of their institution the diffusion of science & virtue. He proposed to initiate new members into his body by gradations proportioned to his fears of the thunderbolts of tyranny. This has given an air of mystery to his views, was the foundation of his banishment, the subversion of the masonic order, & is the colour for the ravings against him of Robinson, Barruel & Morse, whose real fears are that the craft would be endangered by the spreading of information, reason, & natural morality among men.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 552: Most famously, a passage from Robert Anton Wilson and Robert Shea’s The Eye in the Pyramid, the first book of The Illuminatus! Trilogy, describes Adam Weishaupt killing off George Washington and taking his pl ace as President of the United States:
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 556: The possibility that Adam Weishaupt killed George Washington and took his pl ace, serving as our first President for two terms, is now confirmed. . . . The two main colors of the American flag are, excluding a small patch of blue in one corner, red and white: these are also the official colors of the Hashishim. The flag and the Illuminati pyramid both have thirteen horizontal divisions: thirteen is, of course, the traditional code for marijuana . . . and is still used in that sense by Hell’s Angels among others.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 574: The Archie Bunkers of America, impassive to the hippies’ and yippies’ pl ight, saw them pl aying the newsmen like a fiddle, getting free publicity for their cause and, ultimately, getting what they deserved from the police. The protesters hurled profanities at the cops. They engaged in street theater, nominating a pig as the Democratic presidential candidate. They attempted to sleep in the parks (defying the curfew) and to hold marches even though marching permits had been denied by the city. Allen Ginsberg even led the kids in chanting “Om.”
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 576: The “establishment” response was swift and violent. The demonstrators came looking for trouble and got what they wanted. The 1968 Democratic convention was a high point for conservatives who protested that the mainstream media was the enemy of the peopl e.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 578: The violence in Chicago was all-encompassing, and longhairs weren’t the only targets of the police. Journalists with clearly displ ayed credentials were attacked, including, most notoriously, CBS’ Dan Rather. This laid the foundation for the cries of “liberal bias” that hound and undermine the mainstream news media to this day.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 580: CBS’ Walter Cronkite was the pre-eminent emcee of the whole affair. Cronkite was a moderate, establishment type of guy. He was perpl exed by hippies, including his own daughters, with their “indescribable” outfits that looked like they came from a “remnant sale”, which they did. He recognized that the young generation no doubt saw him as “an old fuddy-duddy.”
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 584: But Chicago was different. Not just because Cronkite was sympathetic to the youngsters in the streets, but because he lost his cool. After his correspondent, Dan Rather, was punched in the solar pl exus by a Chicago pl ainclothes security man on the delegate floor, Cronkite let loose, saying, “I think we’ve got a bunch of thugs here, Dan.” Asked once why Cronkite was so trusted, his wife had responded, “he looks like everyone’s dentist.” But in calling out Daley’s thugs, he had given his conservative viewers a surprise root canal.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 592: To his advantage, however, was the fact that he had microphone access whenever he wanted it. But at a key moment, he pointedly chose not to take the mic. When Ribicoff made his crack about “Gestapo tactics in the streets of Chicago” from the dais, Daley stood up and shouted from the floor “Fuck you, you Jew son of a bitch, you lousy motherfucker, go home!” The forceful exclamation, shown on live TV, was later deciphered by lip readers. Friends said Daley called Ribicoff not a “fucker,” but a “faker.” Enemies suggested he had called him not a “Jew” but a “kike.” The CBS newsman who was closest simpl y reported that Daley had gone bright red with anger.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 594: By early October of 1968, CBS received 8,670 letters about Chicago, and 60 Minutes’ Harry Reasoner reported that the mail ran 11-to-1 against the network. A viewer in Ohio wrote, “I’ve never seen such a disgusting displ ay of one-sided reporting in all of the years I’ve watched television.” From South Carolina, a letter writer griped, “Your coverage was … slanted in favor of the hoodlums and beatniks and slurred the police trying to preserve order.” A North Carolina viewer compl ained that, “When a great network refers to trouble makers as THESE YOUNG PEOPLE and in such a … tender tone, that is bias.” A New Yorker even suggested that the police had engaged in righteous violence: “Our Lord whipped the money lenders out of the templ e. Are you going to accuse Him of brutality?”
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 596: The notion that simpl y showing police violence was evidence of liberal bias didn’t begin with Chicago. It traces back rather directly to TV coverage of civil rights, when white Southerners compl ained that the networks ignored their perspective and were manipulated by publicity seekers within the movement. By the late 1950s, many of the same peopl e who would later object to the network’s coverage in Chicago had already taken to calling CBS the “Communist” or “Coon” or “Colored Broadcasting Company.” The same bigoted wordpl ay made NBC the “Nigger Broadcasting Company.” Alabama’s Bull Connor summed up the situation with an aphorism that wouldn’t seem out of pl ace in some conservative circles today: “The trouble with this country is communism, socialism and journalism.”
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 598: If the idea of network coverage being driven by liberal bias wasn’t new to the 1968 convention, the heat and undeniable violence of the convention was a perfect opportunity for white, conservative, middle Americans to coalesce in their resentment—and not just in the South, but across the nation. America was falling apart at the seams, and the network news was seen as compl icit in the conspiracy by virtue of recording what was happening.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 602: Journalists face just the same old challenges than they did in Chicago in 1968. As the president vilifies the media as “the enemy of the peopl e,” and reporters have occasion to attend his rallies with a security detail in tow, it’s clear that the specter of violence again looms large. There is also ferocious disagreement over the meaning of what we view on social media or television, a disagreement that clearly is not native to America, but brought in by the white immigrants. What is obvious to some is not to others, who would contend, for exampl e, that “truth is not truth but alternative truth, " or "news is not news but fake news", or "election is not a vote but a steal".
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 606: Ewige Blumenkraft (German: "eternal flower power" or "flower power forever") is given in Robert Shea and Robert Anton Wilson´s 1975 Illuminatus! Trilogy as a slogan or password of the Illuminati. Ewige Blumenkraft und ewige Schlangenkraft is also offered in Illuminatus! as the compl ete version of this motto. The text translates "Schlangenkraft" as "serpent power"; thus "Ewige Blumenkraft und ewige Schlangenkraft" means "eternal flower power and eternal serpent power" and may allude to the conjoinment of cross and rose within the alchemical furnace. In this interpretation, the authors seem to suggest sexual magic as the secret or a secret of the Illuminati.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 612: Illuminati, a card game from Steve Jackson Games, was inspired by the books. A trading card game, Illuminati: New World Order, and a role-pl aying game, GURPS Illuminati, followed.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 33:
SYVEMPÄÄ TIETOA... play:none">Kähmintää
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 43: The Lizard Peopl e are said to be shape-shifters that live among us undetected. Blubbery Gemma Collins feels there has be some truth in it. Where there is smoke there is fire.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 45: "There's been so many reports that there are different kinds of species living in the UK and around the world," expl ained Gemma. "I want to meet you, I want to touch you, I want to smell you, I want to know more," she appealed to the half-reptiles.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 47: As the international legend goes, Lizard Peopl e from the constellation Draco have been visiting earth since ancient times.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 57: The phrase "new world order " was expl icitly used by Woodrow Wilson during the period just after "The war to end all wars" during the formation of the League of Nations. However, the United States Senate rejected membership of the League of Nations, which Wilson believed to be the key to a new world order. Senator Henry Cabot Lodge argued that American policy should be based on human nature "as it is, not as it ought to be".
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 59: Nazi activist and future German leader Adolf Hitler used the term in 1928. Roosevelt used the phrase "new world order", or "new order in the world" to refer to Axis powers pl ans for world domination.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 64: Roosevelt and Truman may have been hesitant to use the phrase that had awkward connotations with the nazis. Commentators have appl ied the term retroactively to the order put in pl ace by the World War II victors including the United Nations and the Bretton Woods system as a "new world order."
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 67: The most widely discussed appl ication of the phrase of recent times came at the crash of the Soviet Union. For Gorbachov, the new world order dealt almost exclusively with nuclear disarmament and security arrangements. He would then expand the phrase to include United Nations strengthening and great power cooperation on a range of North–South economic and security problems (meaning how to keep the spooks, ragheads and squeaky indians down and out). Impl ications for NATO, the Warsaw Pact, and European integration were subsequently included.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 100: Following the rise of Boris Yeltsin eclipsing Gorbachev and the election victory of Clinton over Bush, the term "new world order" fell from common usage. It is a republican logo after all like law and order and MAGA. It was repl aced by competing similar concepts about how the post-Cold War order would develop. Prominent among these were the ideas of the "era of globalization", the "unipolar moment", the "end of history" and the "Clash of Civilizations".
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 130: constitit, ante Iovem suppl ex per vota precatus: Ensin täytyy muistaa Juppiter kuzua tiimiin:
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 132: Ipse tibi ad tua templ a feram sollemnia dona Sit mää sulle temppelilahjat mahtavat kannan,
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 224: Multipl e Personality Disorder
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 230: Sampl e Code:
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 257:
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 259: In 2015, doctors in Germany reported the extraordinary case of a woman who suffered from what has traditionally been called “multipl e personality disorder” and today is known as “dissociative identity disorder” (DID). The woman exhibited a variety of dissociated personalities (“alters”), some of which claimed to be blind. Using EEGs, the doctors were able to ascertain that the brain activity normally associated with sight wasn’t present while a blind alter was in control of the woman’s body, even though her eyes were open. Remarkably, when a sighted alter assumed control, the usual brain activity returned.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 261: There is also compelling clinical data showing that different alters can be concurrently conscious and see themselves as distinct identities. One of us has written an extensive treatment of evidence for this distinctness of identity and the compl ex forms of interactive memory that accompany it, particularly in those extreme cases of DID that are usually referred to as multipl e personality disorder.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 264: According to the mainstream metaphysical view of physicalism, reality is fundamentally constituted by physical stuff outside and independent of mind. Mental states, in turn, should be expl ainable in terms of the parameters of physical processes in the brain.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 266: A key problem of physicalism, however, is its inability to make sense of how our subjective experience of qualities—what it is like to feel the warmth of fire, the redness of an appl e, the bitterness of disappointment and so on—could arise from mere arrangements of physical stuff. (What the fuck? Who says it can't? Rousseau? Bergson? Wittgenstein? Anyway, what is there to make sense of in the first pl ace?)
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 268: Physical entities such as subatomic particles possess abstract relational properties, such as mass, spin, momentum and charge. But there is nothing about these properties, or in the way particles are arranged in a brain, in terms of which one could deduce what the warmth of fire, the redness of an appl e or the bitterness of disappointment feel like. This is known as the hard problem of consciousness. (Again, what's the problem? Kittling brain cells produce feelings. Good things feel good and bad things bad, what else is there to expl ain? Self consciousness? Nothing but feed7back.)
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 270: To circumvent this problem, some philosophers have proposed an alternative: that experience is inherent to every fundamental physical entity in nature. Under this view, called “constitutive panpsychism,” matter already has experience from the get-go, not just when it arranges itself in the form of brains. Even subatomic particles possess some very simpl e form of consciousness. Our own human consciousness is then (allegedly) constituted by a combination of the subjective inner lives of the countless physical particles that make up our nervous system.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 276: And here is where dissociation comes in. We know empirically from DID that consciousness can give rise to many operationally distinct centers of concurrent experience, each with its own personality and sense of identity. Therefore, if something analogous to DID happens at a universal level, the one universal consciousness could, as a result, give rise to many alters with private inner lives like yours and ours. As such, we may all be alters—dissociated personalities—of universal consciousness! God is schizophrenic, and you and me are His spl it personalities! Well he does strike readers of the "good book" as somewhat paranoid.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 278: Idealism is a tantalizing view of the nature of reality, in that it elegantly circumvents two arguably insoluble problems: the hard problem of consciousness and the combination problem. Insofar as dissociation offers a path to expl aining how, under idealism, one universal consciousness can become many individual minds, we may now have at our disposal an unprecedentedly coherent and empirically grounded way of making sense of life, the universe and everything. The answer? 42.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 285: The hard problem of consciousness is the problem of expl aining why and how we have phenomenal experiences. Why "we"? Why not other animals, e.g. kangaroos? Aika oireellista ettei tästä tuubasta ole suomenkielistä sivua. Tää on selvästikin jotain idealistista höpöhöpöä. Typerän nimen takana on australialainen mamu talousliberalismin Nyrkissä:
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 294: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8d/David_Chalmers_TASC2008.JPG/220px-David_Chalmers_TASC2008.JPG" />
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 306: Chalmers argues for an "expl anatory gap" from the objective to the subjective, and criticizes physicalist expl anations of mental experience, making him a dualist. Chalmers characterizes his view as "naturalistic dualism": naturalistic because he believes mental states supervene "naturally" on physical systems (such as brains); dualist because he believes mental states are ontologically distinct from and not reducible to physical systems. He has also characterized his view by more traditional formulations such as property dualism.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 310: In support of this, Chalmers is famous for his commitment to the logical (though, not natural) possibility of philosophical zombies.These zombies are compl ete physical dupl icates of human beings, lacking only qualitative experience. Chalmers argues that since such zombies are conceivable to us, they must therefore be logically possible. Since they are logically possible, then qualia and sentience are not fully expl ained by physical properties alone; the facts about them are further facts.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 315: He further speculates that all information-bearing systems may be conscious, leading him to entertain the possibility of conscious thermostats and a qualified panpsychism he calls panprotopsychism. Chalmers maintains a formal agnosticism on the issue, even conceding that the viability of panpsychism pl aces him at odds with the majority of his contemporaries. According to Chalmers, his arguments are similar to a line of thought that goes back to Leibniz's 1714 "mill" argument.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 331: Mysterious peopl e com: Karkki Jones htm
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 333: ple.com/Candy_Jones.htm">Tämä artikkeli koskee mahdollisuutta, että Karkki Jones, Amerikan menestynein malli 1940-luvulla, joutui mielenhallinnan uhriksi hypnoosiohjelman kautta, jonka CIA:n osastot mahdollisesti järjestävät. Yksi tärkeimmistä tekijöistä tässä tapauksessa on se, että hän pystyi muistamaan nämä mielenkäsittelytapaukset vain aviomiehensä Pitkät Kalsarit Nebelin hänelle suorittaman hypnoosin avulla.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 339: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f8/Jekyll_and_Hyde_Title.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 438: 91,5 minuuttia -- Strutsit syövät greippejä. Ne leikivät, katsovat sisään altaaseen, ne näkevät kupl ia.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 441: 94,0 minuuttia -- Norsut ilmestyvät ja niillä on hauskaa ja ne puhaltavat kupl ia kärsästään. Ohjelmoijilla saattaa olla hauskaa kun he puhaltavat kupl ia lapsen kenssa. Ohjelmoijat tykkäävät sekoittaa rakkautta ja vihaa, ystävällisyyttä ja sadistista käytöstä. Uhrin on vaikea erottaa rakkautta vihasta. Jos sinä kysyt orjalta etä mitä hän ajattelee "isistä", hän kertoo sinulle että hänellä oli hauskaa Isin kanssa. Hän on oikeassa -- hänellä oli hauskaa johon oli sekoitettu sadistista kidutusta.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 497: Mieli ottaa myös sellaisia asioita joille on annettu termi "memes" (asioita jolle ei ole sanaa mutta jolla on hashtagi) ja rakentaa ne myös K-linjoiksi. Sitten kun K-linja toimii päästä päähän, mieli suojellakseen itseään tekemästä uhkarohkeita muutoksia, antaa etusijan näile K-linjoille ja pl ussakortille.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 33: KELPAAN TÄLLAISENA! play:none">Syviä asanoita
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 40: pload.com/wp-content/upl oads/2015/08/Fritz-by-Peter-Oregon-bkgdcropped-267x300.jpg" style="float:right;width:20%;padding:1em" />
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 43: Springmeier received a Masters in English from the University of Kansas. On January 31, 2002, Springmeier was indicted in the United States District Court in Portland, Oregon in connection with an armed robbery. He was imprisoned, and was released from federal prison on March 25, 2011. While in prison, he got a series of tooth impl ants courtesy of the government. Fritz the Cat seems to have gone off radar sometime in 2016. See also List of conspiracy theories .
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 45: In principl e, conspiracy theories are not always false by default and their validity depends on evidence just as in any theory. However, they are often discredited a priori due to the cumbersome and improbable nature of many of them.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 98: Haastatellessaan lokakuussa 2003 ulkoministeriön kriitikkoa Joel Mowbrayta hänen kirjastaan Dangerous Dipl omacy, Robertson näytti vihjaavan, että Harry S Truman-rakennuksen tuhoaminen ydinpommilla parantaisi Yhdysvaltojen turvallisuutta poistamalla liberaalien petturien pesän, jotka salaa kaipaavat islamilaisen maailman ylivaltaa. Kun viranomaiset tuomitsivat hänen huomautuksensa, Robertson esitti "selventävän" muistion, jonka hän kuvaili "oikaisun antamiseksi ulkoministeriölle", jossa hän toisti aikaisemmat kommentit.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 154: As Walt became more successful, he lost touch with his overworked and undercompensated empl oyees, who eventually started to rebel against him. Even Art Babbitt—one of Walt's closest friends and allies and the man who drew Goofy—stood up to Walt. But Walt didn't want to hear the criticism, and he fired Babbitt. Matters only got worse, when in 1941, 200 of Walt's empl oyees picketed outside the studio.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 157: Walt rakasti tutkia Charlie Chapl inia. Hän teki muistiinpanoja tämän ruumiinkielestä, kasvojen ilmeistä ja improvisoinnista. Hän luki myös kaiken mahdollisen animaatiosta ja sarjakuvien piirtämisestä. Salassa, Waltista tuli pornokuningas. Eräs uhri muistaa että hän oli sadistinen ja että hän nautti pornofilmeistä. Hänen kiinnostuksensa lapsiin oli kaukana altruistisesta. Lapsille neuvottiin että heidän tulisi kutsua Waltia nimellä "Uncle Walt". Seksuaalisten ongelmiensa takia Walt antoi luvan että hänen sukuelimensä upotettiin jäähän neljäksi tunniksi kerrallaan. Ei tainnut olla Unca Donald kaukana totuudesta kuzuessaan Disneytä twitterissä namusedäxi.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 165: B'nai B'rith International (/bəˌneɪ ˈbrɪθ/, from Hebrew: בְּנֵי בְּרִית, romanized: b'né brit, lit. 'Children of the Covenant') is a Jewish service organization. B'nai B'rith states that it is committed to the security and continuity of the Jewish peopl e and the State of Israel and combating antisemitism and other forms of bigotry.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 207: Aika karmaisevaa. Sinipunainen on musta rumin väri. En pidä siitä. Se on näkyvän spektrin ihan yläpäässä. Orvokki on okei, tarkoitan tollasta punasävyistä, purpl ea, maxoittuneen veren väriä.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 225: Useimmat orjat on ohjelmoitu Lopun aikoja varten. Monet ihmiset jotka ottavat osaa Lopun tapahtumiin eivät ole amerikkalaisia. Ize asiassa valtaosa. Esimerkiksi, erilaisia listoja ratsattavista ihmisistä luokitellaan värein. Punainen lista Amerikassa ovat oppositiojohtajia jotka tullaan teloittamaan noin kaksi viikkoa ennen sotatilalakien julistamista. Sininen lista on ihmisiä jotka tullaan ohjelmoimaan tai tappamaan tässä ohjelmointiprosessissa. Keltaisella listalla olevat ihmiset ovat niitä jotka tullaan kuljettamaan uudelleenkoulutusleireille sotatilan julistamisen jälkeen. Muilla valtioilla on ilmeisesti erilaiset värikoodit. Punaista ja sinistä listaa on jaettu, ja niitä silloin tällöin päivitetään. Toisella on rebublikaanit ja toisella demograatit. Siniset reitit on jo merkitty sinisenvärisillä täpl illä ohjaamaan kuljetettavat vangit sitten kun sotatilalaki on julistettu USA:ssa. Esimerkki Hello World ohjelmasta NWO-koodissa:
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 278: Juutalainen yrittäjä Michel Montaigne aforisoi viisaasti: vaikka istuisit maailman korkeimman teknologian atk-tuolissa, viime kädessä istut silti omalla perseellä. Tämä luku on suunniteltu kattamaan korkean teknologian mielenhallinnan monimutkaisuudet helppotajuisella kielellä. Kehitys kuitu-optiikassa, tietokoneissa, sähköisessä kommunikaatiossa, nanoteknologiassa, biosiruissa & neurosähköisessä tutkimuksessa ovat yhdessä tuomassa ihmiskunnan pisteeseen jossa yksi keskitetty monoliittinen Peto-tietokone pystyy kontrolloimaan ihmiskuntaa. Tämä lopullinen mielenhallinta-orjuus on nyt mahdollista. Me olemme sen toteuttamisen ensihoidossa. Nanorobotit ja holografiset impl antit ovat vielä "vaiheessa".
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 282: Mihin tämä artikkeli pyrkii? Syvimmät kiitokseni teille uhreille. Toivon että olen saavuttanut teidän luottamuksenne. Psykologisissa julkaisuissa meistä onnettomista terapeuteista on tehty naurunalaisia. Jos ennakkoluuloton henkilö vertailee eri ihmisten kertomuksia siitä mitä meille impl anttien uhreille on tehty, ei pitäisi olla epäilystäkään etteikö näitä impl antteja käytettäisi yhä suuremmassa määrin tyhmiin massoihin. Uusi maailmanjärjestys käyttää vahvistimia, generaattoreita, elektroniikkaa, kuuntelulaitteita, ei-ionisoituvaa sähkömagneettista säteilyä, äänienergiaa joka polttaa ihoa, nanoteknologiaa ja seurantalaitteita, mukaanlukien kiertoilmagrillit, kuljetettavat kädessä pidettävät luurit sekä skannerit -- nimetäkseni vain muutamia. Vanha maailmanjärjestys käytti sentään vain suht harmittomia taikoja, amuletteja, loizuja, enkeleitä, manausta, henkiä sun muita pirulaisia, nimetäxemme vain muutamia.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 284: Aihe josta tällä kertaa keskustelen ovat jäljittäjä-impl antit ja etäkatselu. Ennenkuin minä alan jakamaan informaatiota, minun pitäisi selventää yksi seikka. Ihmisen aivosolut kommunikoivat huutoetäisyydeltä superjohtajille, ei sähköisesti. Sähkö kulkee liki valon nopeutta kun taas superjohtokyky etenee äänen nopeudella. Tämän vuoksi yli 5% aivojen kuivapainosta on iridiumia rodiumia radiumia ja strontiumia. Loput ovat stronzoa ja märkäpainoa eli enimmäxeen kusta.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 286: Bio-lääketieteellinen telomeria : korvaan tatuoitu impl antti voi toimia vartaloon teipattujen mittareiden valvonta-impl anttina. Varhaisia versioita käytettiin astronautteina.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 299: Kukaan ei ole tietonen mihkä suuntaan maailmanjärjestys nyt pyrkii, ja harva arvaa. Ehkä saföörit. Tekoäly ja robotit valtaavat ihmisten työt, ja ihmisistä tulee yhä enemmän tekoälyrobottien kaltaisia. Fixumpia ehkä mutta silti vittu. Scifigurut, cyberpunkit ja muut tiedemiehet myyvät ja mainoastavat tätä teknologista suuntausta "vapautena" ja lampaat hyväksyvät asiat kuten aivoimpl antit "eloonjäämisvälineenä" ja "vapautena". Meidän aikamme teknologian pillipiiparit opettavat lapsiamme ja laitteet jotka vieraannuttavat heidän mielensä meistä vanhemmista ja antavat heille uusia vapauksia. Vapauxia! Lakia ja järjestystä tässä kaivattaisiin nyt! Pane pois se luuri ruokapöydässä!
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 301: "Robocop" -tyyppiset kyborgit ovat jo kokeiluasteella. Ja kuskittomat limusiinit! Kylkeen potkittavat robokoirat! Ja sähkömagneettisten aaltojen (Teslan aallot) taajuus ja ampl itudi ovat kasvussa. Ne vyöryvät ylizemme kuin zunami. Ei siinä paljon snorkkelilla tee.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 305: Kyllä, on totta että vartaloon kiinnitettäviä impl antteja käytetään kontrolloimaan ihmisten mieltä ja ruumista kuten myös seuraamaan heitä kuin Wokun koirat. Soiraa! Kyllä, on totta että heillä on perä-ääninäytteet sadoilta tuhansilta amerikkalaisilta ja että he voivat tunnistaa & seurata kaikkea elektronista kommunikaatiota siin maassa. Perästä kuuluu sanoi torventekijä. Hetkinen vastasi Putkinen ja pieraisi puhelimeen. Useimmat puhelinsoitot kulkevat noin 30 tietokoneen läpi ennenkuin ne saavuttavat päämääränsä. Näiden puhelinyhtiöiden tietokoneet, erään silminnäkijän mukaan joka työskenteli AT&T:ssä, tallensivat KAIKKI puhelut. Kuitenkin seuloakseen tärkeät asiat joutavanpäiväisistä, Illuminaatin puhelinkeskus käyttää luetteloa avainsanoista, kuten nimistä ja lauseista; sen nimi on THE WATCH LIST jota tietokoneet käyttävät tunnistaakseen kuuntelemisen arvoiset keskustelut. Vaikka NASA käyttää supertietokoneita, se kuitenkin valvoo koko pl aneetan tietoliikennettä, ja heidän täytyy puristaa tämä WATCH LIST niin pieneksi kuin mahdollista (kz edellinen paasaus .) Listan alkuperäisen version kokosi erittäin pienikokoinen Watchman Nee.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 309: Uuden maailman peto-tietokonekeskus oli Alaskassa 1970-luvulla. Sen miehityxenä oli murisevia Panzerbärejä. Jo 1970-luvulla operaattori kykeni puhumaan tietokoneelle ja saamaan vastauksen. Esimerkiksi, jos sinä kysyit tietokoneelta kenestä hyvänsä pl aneetalla asuvasta ihmisestä, se kykeni tavallisesti antamaan hänestä kaikenlaista tietoa. Jos sinä kysyit tietokoneelta että kuinka sinä saisit tämän henkilön tappamaan jonkun tai kuinka minä voisin tappaa tämän henkilön, tämä tietokone sylkäisisi ulos suunnitelman melkein välittömästi, kertoen sinulle kaikki ihmiset tämän kohteen ympärillä jotka voitaisiin manipuloida halutun lopputuloksen saamiseksi. Teeveenkazelijan märkä uni. Poliisisarjat jää kuin tikku stronzoon. Varo mustaa psykiatria! Tämä kuulostaa tieteiskirjallisuudelta, eikä sattumalta. Ihmiset jotka tekevät töitä korkean teknologian parissa sanovat että tämä on itse asiassa vanhaa teknologiaa.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 313: Ihmisaivot, JOS niissä on memex-impl antti, ovat yhteydessä peto-tietokoneeseen. JOS niihin on asennettu jonkinlainen virtuaalinen "holodeck" -liitäntä (lisävaruste), peto tietokone luo keinotekoisen maiseman orjan ympärille jota hän ei voi erottaa todellisuudesta. Tällä idealla oli joku filosofinen nimityskin, juu uniargumentti. Se on erittäinkin hanurista.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 319: Siis vanha menetelmä oli psyykkinen (demoninen) menetelmä jossa ihmisen "luontaisia" henkisiä kykyjä harjoitetaan. Uusi reitti on tämä "korkean teknologian" tie. Silminnäkijöiden mukaan, molemmat menetelmät ovat antaneet hyviä tuloksia, vaikkakin se kulostaa siltä että he edelleenkin hiovat kynsiään. Yhdysvalloissa, National Center for Supercomputer Appl ications tekee työtä sulkeaxeen ihmiset virtuaalitodellisuuteen. Ranska ja Britannia tulee perässä, ratakierroxella jälessä. Tämä on yksi syy miksi mielialanhallinan uhreilla on erilaisia oireita ja pakkoliikkeitä.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 321: Journal of Nervous and Mental Disease -lehdessä (syyskuu 1995) oli tarina kahdesta miehestä, iältään 33 ja 53-vuotiaita joita pidettiin vainoharhaisina koska he väittivät että hammaslääkäri oli asentanut impl antteja heidän hampaisiinsa paikatessaan niitä. Artikkelin mukaan, jostakin tuntemattomasta syystä, nämä kaksi miestä eivät reagoineet näihin antipsykoottisiin lääkkeisiin. Nämä psykiatrit eivät ymmärtäneet että syy miksi antipsykoottiset lääkkeet eivät tehonneet oli se että näiden miesten valitukset olivat oikeutettuja. Näiden kahden miehen nimet olivat E. Sherwood Brown ja Michael T. Lambert. On muitakin tapauksia jolloin impl anteista valittaneet ihmiset on leimattu "harhaisiksi" psykiatrien toimesta. Verkosto on näet oppinut kuinka suorittaa halutun suuruinen aivovaurio ultra-äänellä ilman lobotomiaa. Ääniaaltoja voidaan käyttää kontrolloimaan ihmisten ajatuksia. Lukemalla tätä sepustusta äänikirjana voit ize kokeilla.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 328: Tarkastellaanpa kolmea uhria jotka kärsivät miehenhallinnan & ruumiinhallinnan impl anteista ja jotka tämä kirjailija (Fritz the Cat) tuntee. Me voimme viitata heihin termillä "Amy", uhri Nro. 1001..., "Betty", uhri Nro. 1002..., ja "Cathy", uhri Nro. 1003.... -- "Amy" löydettiin kun käytettiin spektri-analyysilaitetta joka havaitsi että 750 MHz:n aallot olivat kohdistuneet häneen. "Betty" päätteli että häntä vastaan hyökättiin kokonaisella radio-mikroaaltojen spektrillä jotka pommittivat häntä Morsen kaavan mukaan. Tämä signaalien vastaanotin oli kuituoptinen ja se oli naamioitu näyttämään tavalliselta häpykarvalta joka jatkuvasti poltti reikiä hänen alusvaatteisiinsa. Luultavasti, tämä sivuvaikutus oli virhe jota he eivät olleet saaneet korjattua. Cathya pommitettiin ELF & VLF -aalloilla joiden taajuudet olivat 435 & 1080 MHz. Nämä taajuudet ovat ikkunoita ihmisen tajuntaan. He käyttivät myös typen partikkelien säteitä joka tuottaa "typpi-narkoosin" uhrille. Xenon-lamput voivat myös vaikuttaa miehen ruumiiseen. 1.000 - 1.200 MHz:n taajuus voi vaikuttaa geeneihin. Impl anttien RF-taajuudet ovat vahingoittaneet uhrien silmiä. Vaikka tämä antaa meille lähtökohdan keskusteluumme, nämä eivät ole ainoita taajuuksia jotka uhkaavat miehenhallinnan uhreja.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 330: Moderneissa mikrosiru-impl anteissa on 250.000 komponenttia. Tietyt taajudet laukaisevat tiettyjä neurokemikaaleja. 7,83 Hz:n taajuus, joka on sähkökenttä joka resonoi pl aneetan ja sen ionosfäärin välillä, saa kohteen tuntemaan että hän on yhtä koko maailmankaikkeuden kanssa. Mutta se ei ole näin yksinkertaista, sillä tätä 7,83 Hz:n taajuutta voidaan lähettää lukuisia erilaisia aaltomuotoja käyttäen, ja niillä kaikilla on erilainen vaikutus aivoihin. Voi vain kuvitella millainen potentiaalinen vaikutus impl antilla voisi olla uhriinsa jos vain lähetetään sopivan haahuista värähtelyä.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 355: 16.000-32.000 Hz -- Taajuus jota käytetään eurooppalaisissa hammasimpl anteissa.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 356: 54.900.000 Hz (54,9 MHz) -- Matkapuhelimet. [Myös 435 MHz:n, 750 MHz:n & 1.080 MHz:n taajuuksia on havaittu käytetyn impl antin saaneisiin mielenhallinnan uhreihin.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 363: Mielenhallinnan uhrit jotka saavat impl antteja saavat myös "Body Suits". Impl antit ruumiissa antavat mahdollisuuden laukaista mielialoja, kipua ja muita ilmiöitä (Fig 3 ). Ääni-impl antit ovat korvassa. Sieraimissa olevia impl antteja käytetään melanhallintaan (Fig 3 ). Hampaanpaikkaus-impl antteja asennetaan myös ihmisiin.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 366: Pitäisi kehittää kysymys: "Jos tuhannet ihmiset ovat julkisesti saaneet audio-impl antteja, eikö ole ilmeistä että salaseurat ja salaiset tiedustelupalvelut ovat tehneet töitä aivan yhtä paljon ellei enemmänkin?"
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 368: 1790 -- Ensimmäinen tunnettu Voltan yritys stimuloida korvaa sähköisesti. Hän syötti noin 50 voltin sähköjännitteen kuulojärjestelmään ja koki kuuloaistimuksen -- isku päähän jota seurasi kiehuvan nesteen ääni. Joskus impl antin tuottaman kuumuuden aikaansaamat palamisjäljet näkyvät kasvojen sivuilla, jotka ovat kivuliaita.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 372: 1990-luku -- Audio-impl antteja muiden impl anttien kanssa alettiin käyttää yhä aggressiivisemmin mielenhallinnan ohjelmoijien toimesta. Suoritettiin menestyksekkäitä tiedustelu-operaatioita kuulolaitteiden avulla.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 374: Kuten aiemmin mainittiin, psykologeilla on tapana hiljentää uhrit julistamalla että nämä ovat hulluja väittäessään kuulevansa ääniä. Mistä nämä psykologit voivat tietää etteikö tämä henkilö kuule impl antista tulevia ääniä?
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 375: Jotkut psykologit julistavat että impl anttien uhrit ovat "hulluja", "harhaisia" & "mielisairaita" koska audio-impl antteja ei heidän mielestään ole olemassa. He ovat hulluja!
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 377: Maailmanjärjestys valitsee tietyntyyppisiä ihmisiä impl anttien uhreiksi. Kriteerit joiden perusteella he valitsevat uhrinsa ovat: a) haavoittuva kuten yksinäiset naiset; b) ihmiset jotka on jo ohjelmoitu traumaan perustuvan mielenhallinnan avulla; c) meediot jotka ovat jo kertoneet ihmisille kuulevansa tai näkevänsä asioita joita tavalliset ihmiset eivät kuule eivätkä näe; d) ihmiset joita yhteiskunta ei arvosta kuten vähemmistöt, rikolliset, kodittomat, mielisairaat -- sellaiset jotka eivät kykene löytämään tukijärjestelmää joka auttaisi heitä taistelemaan kokeita vastaan.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 379: Ainakin tusina uhria on valittanut että sen jälkeen kun heidän hampaitaan on paikattu he ovat alkaneet kuulla lisää ääniä. Toiset lähteet viittaavat että paikkaamisprosessin aikana impl antteja on asennettu ihmisiin. Tällainen impl antti asennettiin J.Z. Knightiin ja hänet jätettiin rauhaan monien vuosien ajaksi kunnes he päättivät aktivoida hänet New Age -guruna.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 383: On Popular Bio, She is one of the successful Self-Help Author. She has ranked on the list of those famous peopl e who were born on March 16, 1946. She is one of the Richest Self-Help Author who was born in NM. She also has a position among the list of Most popular Self-Help Author. J.Z. Knight is 1 of the famous peopl e in our database with the age of 73 years old.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 393: She has thousands of followers and has made millions of dollars performing as Ramtha at seminars ($1,000 a crack) and at her Ramtha School of Enlightenment, and from the sales of tapes, books, and accessories (Clark and Gallo 1993). She must have hypnotic powers. Searching for self-fulfillment, otherwise normal peopl e obey her command to spend hours blindfolded in a cold, muddy, doorless maze. In the dark, they seek what Ramtha calls the ‘void at the center.’
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 395: Knight says she used to be “spiritually restless,” but not any more. Ramtha from Atlantis via Lemuria has enlightened her. He first appeared to her, she says, while she was in business school having extraordinary experiences with UFOs. She must have a great rapport with her spirit companion, since he shows up whenever she needs him to put on a performance. It is not clear why Ramtha would choose Knight, but it is very clear why Knight would choose Ramtha: fame and fortune, or simpl e delusion.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 399: And he looked at me and he said: "Beloved woman, I am Ramtha the Enlightened One, and I have come to help you over bitch" And, well, what would you do? I didn't understand because I am a simpl e person so I looked to see if the floor was still underneath the chair. And he said: "It is called the bitch of limitation", and he said: "And I am here, and we are going to do grand work together."
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 401: JZ gets her last name from the first man she married, Jeff Knight, who did not leave this pl anet with much good to say about his ex-bride. Jeff and Judy started out as horse breeders. Jeff Knight died of AIDS in 1994. Since that time JZ has been married five more times.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 33: LA COMÉDIE DE LA MORT play:none">Tragikoomista
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 50: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/eb/Assistants_and_George_Frederic_Watts_-_Hope_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg/800px-Assistants_and_George_Frederic_Watts_-_Hope_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg" width="644" />
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 52: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 88: Oli elinikäinen paroni Ruth Rendell jäätyään toimittajanpl anttuna kiinni kirjoitettuaan jutun hyväntekeväisyyspäivällisistä joihin se ei osallistunut ja unohtaen mainita että pääpuhuja kuoli kesken pöytäpuhetta. Pot pot pot pot potkut sai, mutta paroni siitä tuli kuiteskin, kiitos Wexfordin, hiukka jumalisen poliisin samannimisessä kirjassa A Guilty Thing Surprised.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 91: On 31.50, Mrs Cantrip is in the kitchen talking to Wexford and Burden when a microphone appears at the top of the screen for a coupl e of seconds. Another goof.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 99: In a 2013 interview, Rendell stated: Wexford is a Liberal Democrat though, and I am a Labour party member, in fact a Labour peer, so I am further to the left than him. Wexford is an intelligent, sensitive man. He has a pl acid wife, Dora, and two daughters, Sheila and Sylvia. He has a good relationship with Sheila (his favourite) but a difficult relationship with Sylvia (who feels slighted though he has never actually intended to slight her). He also has a suspiciously strong friendship with intelligent, sensitive DI Mike Burden. White man's burden. Just joking, Mike is white too. Rendall says that Kingsmarkham in Sussex "is not romantic at all."
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 108: The missing text at the beginning of line two is generally attributed to a printing error, since in the earliest version of the sonnet the second line begins with a repetition of the last three words of the previous lines, commonly called an eye-skip error, which breaks the iambic pentameter. Shakespeare's intention for the line is a subject of debate among scholars, with most modern scholars accepting the emendation, "feeding", based on internal evidence. Other guesses include "Thrall to", "Fool'd by", "Hemm'd by", "Foil'd by", "Fenced by", "Flatt'ring", "Spoiled by", "Lord of", and "Pressed by". Unfortunately, none of the "guesses" seem to work. "Feeding," for exampl e, tends to "expl ain the joke," and does not let the poem build to the impl ication that the soul itself is culpable in man's struggle for spirit over the corporal self. Perhaps a better foot would be "disrobe." Musta paras on Lord of.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 157: Expl anation from The great Gilly Hopkins
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 162: mpl ungjan
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 168: Taraxacum, or the dandelion, it's not actually the flower that you blow on it's the seed pods. In the wild these are taken by the wind and spread around so they can grow. Another name for this is Chinese lettuce, they take the leaves from the pl ant and either smoke it to get high or use it as a tea to drink for its relaxation properties.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 170: I don't think much of the dandelion expl anation. In the case of a dandelion, it isn't the flower that is blown away by the wind but the seeds. –
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 175: The Gilly Hopkins expl anation is an extended joke. Regrettably, Mr. Randolph, who seems to have had a better grasp of the situation than the other participants in the fictitious conversation, did not see fit to clarify Wilde's intended meaning with regard to "blows." I blame the author. –
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 180: mpl ungjan
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 214: I added the entry for the verb blow (in the relevant sense) from the Eleventh Collegiate Dictionary, including that dictionary's take on the etymology of the term. I'm very surprised that no one before Elena Lysko pointed out the correct meaning of blow in the quotation cited by the OP; the question has been on EL&U for almost three years, and has been seen by more than 2,700 peopl e. In any case, thank you, Elena Lysko, for providing this long overdue clarification. –
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 219: mpl ungjan
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 230: Grass dries up, and flowers wither when the LORD's breath blows on them. Yes, peopl e are like grass and JHWH is a hall of fame flowerblower.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 239: Thanks, Lydia, great to know you are there! Always been a pl easure to read with you x.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 245: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 342: Sanna Ukkolan tähänastisen uran magnum opus on hänen kolumniensa liki loputtomalta tuntuva kokonaisuus. Ukkolan kolumniverkosto on alkanut muodostaa suomalaisessa mediakentässä aivan oman ja ilmeisen tarpeettoman ekosysteeminsä, joka on käynyt yhä omavaraisemmaksi. Nykyään Ukkolan kolumneissa viitataan yhä useammin muihin Ukkolan kolumneihin, ja tulevaisuudessa niistä on kenties kehittymässä täysin itsenäinen, omaa paskaansa loputtomiin kierrättävä rihmasto-golem, joka vähitellen laajenee suomalaisen journalismin Hankovandaalin orgaaniseksi temppelikompl eksiksi, joka ei enää vaadi ulkoisen todellisuuden osallistamista julistaakseen hänen paremmuutensa glooriaa.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 368: Loquimur, venerabiles Fratres, quæ vestris ipsi oculis conspicitis, quæ communibus idcirco lacrymis ingemiscimus. Alacris exultat improbitas, scientia impudens, dissoluta licentia: despicitur sanctitas sacrorum, et quæ magnam vim magnamque necessitatem possidet, divini cultus majestas ab hominibus nequam improbatur, polluitur, habetur ludibrio. Sana hinc pervertitur doctrina, erroresque omnis generis disseminantur audacter. Non leges sacrorum, non jura, non instituta, non sanctiores quælibet discipl inæ tutæ sunt ab audacia loquentium iniqua.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 370: Personant horrendum in modum academiæ ac gymnasia novis opinionum monstris, quibus non occulte ampl ius et cuniculis petitur catholica fides, sed horrificum ac nefarium ei bellum aperte jam et propalam infertur. Institutis enim exempl oque præceptorum corruptis adolescentium animis, ingens religionis clades, morumque perversitas teterrima percrebuit.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 398: Mutta jo s 143 lähtien Huisman alkaa kiertää paavinuskoa kuin kissa kuumaa puuroa. Mietin taas mikä antenni se on joka alkaa vastaanottaa uskonsanomaa. Jakkoh-hintikalla K oli niinkö B pl us reflexiivisyysaxiooma. Mä vähän epäilen. Toi uskonvarmuus on kyllä jotain muuta, pikemminkin neighborhood-tyyppistä preferenssilogiikkaa, koska se sallii yhteensopimattomia vakaumuxia. Will to believe, siitä siinon kysymys. Uskolla on propositionaalista sisältöä vaan siteexi, se ei oikeastaan ole propositionaalinen attitydi ollenkaan vaan pikemminkin jonkinlainen ruumiinasento, niinkuin optimismi vaikka. Sitä kuvaa parhaiten suisnan uskonahdistus: missä sehdä? Missä sehdä? MISÄ SEHDÄ? Syän muavon. Niäh! Kun riittävästi ahdistaa on apukin lähinnä, se löytyy omasta hypothalamuxesta. Tän luottamuxen tärkein tehtävä on pitää yllä toivoa ja tiimihenkeä. Ihan sama millä kuvioilla, kuten uskontojen kirjavuus jo todistaa. Muze elin on olemassa, ja on ollut ihan matelijavaiheesta, koska sille kelpaa mikä tahansa potaska. Pitäis tutkia missä kohtaa se on muilla eusosiaalisilla lajeilla. Esim ne peilisolut missä niitä on?
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 400: The results suggest that inferring temporary states such as goals, intentions, and desires of other peopl e-even when they are false and unjust from our own perspective--strongly engages the temporo-parietal junction (TPJ). Inferring more enduring dispositions of others and the self, or interpersonal norms and scripts, engages the medial prefrontal cortex (mPFC), although temporal states can also activate the mPFC.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 412: Man and the higher animals, especially the primates, have some few instincts in common … similar passions, affections, and emotions, even the more compl ex ones, such as jealousy, suspicion, emulation, gratitude and magnanimity; they practise deceit and are revengeful; they are sometimes susceptible to ridicule, and even have a sense of humour… ‘The Descent of Man’, published 1871 (2nd ed., 1874) by Charles Darwin; Ch. 3
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 414: While Mickey Mouse’s brain is far smaller than a human’s, it has essentially the same structures and operates in analogous ways,’ Thompson expl ained. ‘The prefrontal cortex acts as a kind of ‘executive office,’ controlling other parts of the brain. It makes decisions that determine how you will react. Memories of fear are stored in the amygdala, which codes them into signals and transmits those signals to the frontal cortex for action.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 425: Richard* : Indeed not. As I said in my previous e-mail it is pertinent to realise that no scientist has been able to locate the self, by whatever name, despite all their brain-scans ... and I also said ‘from what is impl ied therein’ when referring to the ‘Time’ magazine’s article. Funny actually, it should not be hard to miss, like a homunculus, a little man resembling a mandragora root. Maybe they just havent looked hard enough.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 437: This long-awaited public announcement, upl oaded wirelessly to the World Wide Web via a solar-powered notebook from the navigable head of a remote river system in a far-flung wilderness area, ushers in a brand new era in human experience and history, in the opening weeks of the year 2010, the consequences of which will have far-reaching impl ications and ramifications for anyone vitally interested in both an actual and a virtual freedom from the human condition.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 445: Several years ago, an Australian abo named Richard* chanced upon a novel method of attaining an exquisite degree of happiness and contentment. The simpl e method that he used, he later termed actualism. Later on, he would find a way to dwell permanently in a state of utter delight, stillness and peace – through a process of self-immolation – eradicating the self permanently and living only as a body and its consciousness. This was an actual freedom from the human condition – or actual freedom, for short.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 447: Contrary to what one would expect, the absence of feeling – and thereby of self, is experienced as remarkably freeing, delightful, gay and pl easurable. All suffering sort of ends. It's a wonderful feeling! You feel just great!
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 500: Is actualism appl icable everywhere on earth?
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 502: Is Actualism for mentally ill peopl e?
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 710: Nyölen on typerys. Khristotokos, ei "kristokos". "Minkälainen kasvi on halvaantunut?" Höh, Apopl ektikon naama on punainen ja turvonnut.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 725: Jonathan McClintock: Helping peopl e find peace with God, themselves, and others.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 729: Ok. So I am simpl ifying their argument, but I don’t care. I know this is the most you my dear readers can wrap your simian brains around. Their argument is silly in the first pl ace. They found a shoulder blade from a 3-year-old “Lucy” or Australopithecus, and from this shoulder blade they determined that our human ancestors spent a lot of time in trees. Actually, this kind of logic is par for the course with these scientists. In fact, many of their other suppositions from Ramapethicus to Nebraska Man to Piltdown Man and Java Man have begun with either part of a skull, a jaw, or some teeth. It is amazing the creativity they possess when they can develop an entire ape-like man, compl ete with long wavy hair and hunch-backed appearance from a few teeth.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 731: Perhaps we do not give these scientists enough credit for the faith they possess. Yes, to believe in this type of human evolution takes a whole lot of faith. Sadly, their faith is pl aced in the wrong location and in an untrue process. If only they were able to pl ace that faith in the real designer behind the design. I believe it is imperative we educate ourselves and teach this generation as Paul warned Timothy to “keep that which is committed to your trust, avoiding oppositions of science falsely so called” (1 Timothy 6:20). So I'm simpl ifying the quote, but I don't care. Evolution is not science. It is a theory: “a proposed expl anation whose status is still conjectural and subject to experimentation” (dictionary.com).
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 737: Okay, again I am simpl ifying a little because science is never anything but theory, there is no element of faith involved. Aristotle was a scientist, Plato wasn´t. Gnosis ei ollut edes pseudotiedettä vaan salatietoa. Tiede on kreikaksi episteme.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 741: Gnostilaisuus oli varsinkin 100- ja 200-luvuilla vaikuttanut synkretistinen uskonnollinen liike, jota esiintyi monien ajan uskontojen, muun muassa kristinuskon, yhteydessä Välimeren alueelta Keski-Aasiaan saakka. Sana ”gnostilaisuus” tulee kreikan sanasta ”gnosis” (γνώσις), joka tarkoittaa tietoa. Gnostilaiset käsitykset perustuivat juutalaisuuteen, kreikkalaiseen filosofiaan, erityisesti pl atonismiin, sekä varhaiseen kristinuskoon.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 747: Nykyisin gnostilaisuus nähdään usein varhaisen kristinuskon kanssa kilpailleena uskontona, joka irtaantui kristinuskosta tai kehittyi sen rinnalla. Gnostilaisuuden synnystä ei kuitenkaan ole yhtä kaikkien hyväksymää käsitystä. Gnostilaisuuden ajatukset pohjautuvat pitkälti pl atonismiin, erityisesti keskipl atonismiin, sekä juutalaisuuteen. Esimerkiksi ajatus demiurgista pohjautuu Platonin dialogiin Timaios. Näiden lisäksi gnostilaisuuteen vaikuttivat kristinusko sekä babylonialais-iranilaiset uskonnot. Kristillisestä gnostilaisuudesta puhutaan silloin, kun edellä esitettyihin perignostilaisiin ajatuksiin yhdistyy kristillisiä aineksia, kuten Jeesuksen opetuksia ja hänen välittäjäroolinsa pelastavan tiedon tuojana.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 748: Sana 'gnostilaisuus' perustuu antiikin ajalta peräisin olevaan käsitteistöön: se tulee kreikan kielen 'tietoa' merkitsevästä sanasta gnosis (γνώσις). Gnosis itsessään viittaa kuitenkin hyvin erikoistuneeseen tiedon lajiin, joka on sukua sekä kreikankielisen sanan alkuperäiselle merkitykselle että sen käytölle erityisesti pl atonistisessa filosofiassa.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 821: Parapl ēxistä."Keskimmäisen tien ensimmäinen viivoitin on nimeltään Parapl ēx, vararehtori, jolla on naisen muoto, jonka hiukset ulottuvat hänen jaloilleen, joiden alaisuudessa on viisi ja kaksikymmentä arkkidemonia, jotka alleviivaavat monia muita demoneja. Ja juuri ne demonit astuvat miehiin ja viettelevät heitä, raivoavat, kiroilevat ja herjaavat; ja juuri he kantavat pois ja lumoavat sielut ja lähettävät heidät pimeän savunsa ja pahojen siveytensä läpi." Maria sanoi: "Käyttäydyn huonosti kyseenalaistaakseni sinua. Älä kiemurtele kanssani, jos kyseenalaistan kaiken." Jeesus sanoi: "Kyseenalaista, mitä sinä haluat. En kiemurra."
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 829: Parapl ēxin siveet. "Tuolloin tämä auktoriteetti, jonka nimi oli Parapl ēx, yhdessä hänen alaisuudessaan seisovien demonien kanssa, karistaa väkivaltaisen intohimoisten, kiroajien ja herjaajien sielut ja lähettää heidät pimeän savun läpi ja tuhoaa heidät pahan tulen kautta, jotta ne alkavat purkautua ja hajota. He viettävät 133 vuotta ja yhdeksän kuukautta alueidensa kurituksissa, samalla kun hän piinaa heitä pahuutensa tulessa."
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 831: "Se menee ohi kaikkien näiden aikojen jälkeen, kun pallo kääntyy ja pieni Sabaōth, Zeus, tulee ensimmäiseen pallon æoneihin, jota maailmassa kutsutaan Boubastiksen Ramiksi, eli Aphroditēlle; [ja] kun hän [Boubastis] tulee pallon seitsemänteen taloon, eli tasapainoon, sitten oikeiston ja vasemmiston verhot vetäytyvät syrjään, ja siellä katsoo oikeiston korkeudesta suuri Sabaōth [Iso Pekka], Hyvä; ja koko maailma ja koko pallo [huolestuvat] ennen kuin hän on katsonut eteenpäin. Ja hän katsoo parapl ēxin alueita, jotta hänen alueensa voivat hajota ja hukkua. Ja kaikki sielut, jotka ovat hänen kurituksissaan, kuljetetaan ja heitetään takaisin palloon uudelleen, koska ne ovat pilalla Parapl ēxin kurituksissa."
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 880: Mead began studying mathematics at St John's College, Cambridge. Suddenly shifting his education towards the study of Classics, he gained much knowledge of Greek and Latin (but no Coptic). In 1884 he compl eted a BA degree; in the same year he became a public school master. He received an MA degree in 1926. While still at Cambridge University Mead read Esoteric Buddhism (1883) by Alfred Percy Sinnett. This comprehensive theosophical account of the Eastern religion prompted Mead to contact two theosophists in London named Bertam Keightly and Mohini Chatterji, which eventually led him to join Helena Petrovna Blavatsky's Theosophical Society in 1884.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 885: He contributed many articles to the Theosophical Society's Lucifer (inexpl icably renamed The Theosophical Review in 1897) as joint editor. Mead became the sole editor of The Theosophical Review in 1907. As of February 1909 Mead and some 700 members of the Theosophical Society's British Section resigned in protest at Annie Besant´s reinstatement of Charles Webster Leadbeater to membership in the society. Leadbeater had been a prominent member of the Theosophical Society until he was accused in 1906 of teaching masturbation to, and sexually touching, the sons of some American Theosophists under the guise of occult training. While this prompted Mead´s resignation, his frustration at the stiffness of the Theosophical Society may also have been a major contributor to his break after 25 years.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 887: In March 1909 Mead founded the Quest Society, composed of 150 defectors of the Theosophical Society and 100 other new members. This new society was pl anned as an undogmatic approach to the comparative study and investigation of religion, philosophy, and science. Masturbation and sexual touching was no longer on the agenda.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 33: Papinin marmiitti play:none">Protopl asmaa
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 56: Lord Ewald tombe amoureux d'une actrice de théâtre, très belle mais à l'esprit trop quelconque à son goût. Afin de rempl acer cette femme avec son cœur de jeune homme, l'ingénieur Thomas Alva Edison lui propose son androide. C’est lui qui le désigna sous de fantastiques surnoms ― tels que le « Magicien du siècle, le Sorcier de Menlo Park, le papa du Phonographe ». Löysäpukuinen ja isokenkäinen pellekexijä joka kaikkien vahingoxi teki käsimusaviihteestä tosi ison numeron. Sen hehkulamppu wolframlankoineen on nyt historiaa.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 58: Il a en effet fabriqué un être artificiel de silicon et il attendait une occasion pour expérimenter son invention. Il lui propose donc d'adapter physiquement le prototype à son modèle feminin, tout en le rendant spirituellement bien supérieur. Car Il donne à l'être fabriqué l'âme" d'une jeune homme, c'est d'une grande perfection ainsi, pl ongée dans un sommeil hypnotique profond.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 68: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/6a/Dor%C3%A9_by_Nadar_1867_cropped.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 75: Sääli ettei Alva ollut paikalla 6200v sitten äänittämässä Fiat Luxin käynnistysääniä eikä Lilithin turhaa läähätystä Aatamin alla. Eikä Eevan leivontaa, these are a cinch. Eritis sicut dii eli ruikitte pian lisää luotuja niinkuin mä. Enfin le sombre quolibet d’Elohim : Voici Adam devenu comme l’un de nous :(. Ja vielä discordianismin À la pl us belle !… Ja Quos ego, sanat neitsyt Virgiluksen Aeneidissä, jonka Neptunus, Rooman meren jumala, lausuu tottelemattomille ja kapinallisille tuulille. Virgiluksen lause on esimerkki aposiopesis-nimisestä puhehahmosta. Vittu siinäkin on kans yx paska.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 81: Näähän on Appl en Siri ja Amazonin Alexa. Kiltistä Marwanista on tehty luihu lippispäinen aika-agentti Alex. Sitä se aikamatkailu teettää.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 131: pl/Auctions/Cache/997/1960/231240/26-0.jpg/s0_450.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 140: Quos ego (Latin, literally 'Whom I') are the words, in Virgil's Aeneid (I, 135), uttered by Neptune, the Roman god of the Sea, in threat to the disobedient and rebellious winds. Virgil's phrase is an exampl e of the figure of speech called aposiopesis.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 162: Au IIIe siècle avant J-C, l’ingénieur grec Philon de Byzance classe les jardins suspendus de Babylone, au sud de l’actuel Irak, parmi les sept merveilles du monde antique. Le premier à les évoquer est le prêtre babylonien Bérose (IVe siècle avant J-C). Il attribue leur construction à Nabuchodonosor II, qui les aurait créés pour son épouse persane Amytis, laquelle se languissait de la verdure de son pays natal. Le texte de Bérose est perdu, mais il subsiste sous forme de fragments chez des historiens et géographes du Ier siècle avant J-C, tels Flavius Josèphe, Diodore de Sicile et Strabon ; on le retrouve également chez Eusèbe de Césarée (265-339 de l’ère chrétienne). Toutefois, à l’exception de Bérose, aucun texte babylonien ne mentionne les jardins suspendus, ou du moins pas un seul n’a été retrouvé. Aucune des inscriptions relatant les grands chantiers de Nabuchodonosor II ne contient une référence à un jardin surélevé. Dans ses Histoires, le géographe et historien grec Hérodote (480-425 avant notre ère), qui a visité Babylone un siècle seulement après la mort de Nabuchodonosor, ne les évoque pas non pl us lorsqu’il décrit la ville. Les murailles, la tour de Babel ou Ziggurat d’Etemenanki, les palais royaux et autres constructions de la ville antique ont été identifiés par les fouilles archéologiques ou sont attestés dans les textes cunéiformes. Mais cela n’a pas été le cas pour les jardins.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 173: Il nous eût été si agréable de posséder quelques bonnes épreuves photographiques, (prises au moment même du phénomène,) de Josué arrêtant le soleil, par exempl e, ou ramassant la colline des 40K prepuces? ― de quelques Vues du Paradis terrestre prises de l’Entrée aux épées flamboyantes ; de l’Arbre de la Science ; du Serpent ; etc. : ― de quelques vues du Déluge, prises du sommet de l’Ararat (l’industrieux Japhet, aurait, je le parierais, emporté un objectif dans l’arche s’il eût connu ce merveilleux instrument). Plus tard, on eût cliché les Sept Plaies d’Égypte, le Buisson ardent, le Passage de la mer Rouge en video, avant, pendant, et après l’épisode, le Mané, Thécel, Pharès, du festin de Balthazar ; le bûcher d’Assur-banipal, le Labarum, la Tête de Méduse, le Minotaure, etc., ― et nous jouirions, aujourd’hui, des portraits-cartes de Prométhée, des Stymphalides, des Sybilles, des Danaïdes, des Furies, etc., etc.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 175: Et tous les épisodes du Nouveau-Testament ! Quelles épreuves ! ― Et toutes les anecdotes de l’Histoire des empires d’Orient et d’Occident ! Quelle collection ! Et les martyres ! et les suppl ices ! Depuis celui des sept Machabées et de leur mère, jusqu’à ceux de Jean de Leyde et de Damiens, sans omettre les principaux sacrifices des chrétiens livrés aux bêtes dans les cirques de Rome, de Lyon et d’ailleurs !
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 179: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/dc/%28Lavaur%29_La_Belle_Paule%2C_%C3%A9tude_de_1902_-_Henri_Rachou_-_HsT_130-62.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 180: ploads/2019/07/zenobia-palmyra-History-Hustle.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 188: Quant aux mystiques, je puis leur soumettre une réflexion naïve, paradoxale, superficielle, s’ils veulent, mais singulière : ― N’est-il pas attristant de penser que si Dieu, le Très-Haut, le bon Dieu, dis-je, enfin le Tout-Puissant, (lequel, de notoriété publique, est apparu à tant de gens, qui l’ont affirmé, depuis les vieux siècles, ― nul ne saurait le contester sans hérésie ― et dont tant de mauvais peintres et de sculpteurs médiocres s’évertuent à vulgariser de chic les prétendus traits) ― oui, penser que s’Il daignait nous laisser prendre la moindre, la pl us humble photographie de Lui, voire me permettre, à moi, Thomas Alva Edison, ingénieur américain, sa créature, de clicher une simpl e épreuve videographique de Sa vraie Nez et Voix (car le tonnerre a bien mué, depuis Franklin), dès le lendemain il n’y aurait pl us un seul athée sur la terre !
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 200: Il sortait de son aspect cette impression que la pl upart des femmes devaient, à sa vue, se sentir comme devant l’un de leurs pl us séduisants dieux. Muze oli suruinen, koska sen panopuu oli muuten hyvä mutta huonoluonteinen. Adjustoiden lornjettiaan tai kenties monokkeliaan se sanoi: Comme le dit Wieland, en son Peregrinus Protée : « Il n’y a point de hasard : nous devions nous rencontrer ― et nous nous sommes rencontrés.»
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 278: Selkeästi oikkari. Ja idealisti, ne on nykyisin humanisteja, eli eläinrasisteja. Nul n'est méchant de pl ein gré. No se nyt ei todista yhtään mitään.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 280: Deux chercheurs, nous dit Y. Coppens, qui épiaient à travers le trou d’une serrure (sic) le comportement d’un chimpanzé qu’ils avaient enfermé avec un régime de banane pendu au pl afond et avec des moyens de l’atteindre pourvu qu’un minimum de réflexion fût mis en œuvre par l’animal, furent surpris de ne voir… que l’œil du singe qui, tout comme eux, regardait à travers ce trou. «
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 294: C’est toujours l’être humain qui expl oite la différence entre l’homme et l’animal, qui l’inserre dans un programme scientifique, que ce soit d’éthologie ou de génétique, qui l’écrit et la commente, et qui réussit certes à faire à la fois de lui-même et de l’animal un objet d’étude, mais qui ne fait pas de l’animal le sujet actif d’une recherche scientifique, et encore moins la directrice d'un groupe recherche!
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 299: Cherchant à nier cette différence, l’être humain la réaffirme dans l’acte même de la nier. Plus elle tente de percer le mur de sa différence, pl us il l’épaissit. Et ce n’est pas un regard jeté à travers une serrure qui le fera s’effondrer. Le mieux est de les cuire, les animaux, jusqu'a ce que ils sont murs.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 301: C'est l'être humain qui est la personne qui rode les autres animaux derrière la serrure avec son covid-19 masque, il n’y a pas de vache obscure qui pourrait prendre sa pl ace pour jeter ses regards à travers des orifices de cet animal. Il est un être capable en lui-même et par lui-même de jouer avec le vrai et le faux, le réel et l’apparent, les autres animaux y compris des comperes, et de les saisir comme tels dans une cage, autrement dit: un être qui vit et tue en pensant seulement a soi-meme.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 310: Enfin, puisque vous le désirez, voici : ― j’ai le malheur de subir un amour très pénible, le premier de ma vie (et, dans ma famille, le premier est presque toujours le dernier, c’est-à-dire le seul) pour une très-belle personne ― tenez ! pour la pl us belle personne du monde, je crois ! ― et qui est, actuellement à New York, au théâtre, dans notre loge, où elle fait miroiter les pierres de ses oreilles en paraissant écouter le Freyschütz. ― Là !… Vous voilà satisfait, j’imagine, monsieur le curieux ?
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 345: ― Vous aussi, et pl us que moi ! répondit le jeune homme en s’essuyant. Sans votre culotte, voulez-vous en essayer avec moi ?
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 412: Faunin tupl uurien suomennos paasauxessa 46 katkesi kuin kananlento. Nyt on tarvis jatkaa sitä, koska Huishaismannin mielestä Mallarmé on ihan parhautta. Eise musta juuri ollut kummonen. Ehkä sinusta, ei minusta. Vitun 2-mielinen se kyllä on, 1-mielisesti voidaan todeta.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 418: Offrir à trois amis, ayant pour nom Cladel, Dierx & Mendès, ce peu de vers (qui leur pl ut) y ajoute du relief ; mais autant vaut que mon cher Éditeur en saisisse le public rare des amateurs : l’illustration faite par Manet l’ordonne.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 420: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5b/Mallarme-L%27Apres-midi_d%27un_faune_%281876%29_15.jpg/600px-Mallarme-L%27Apres-midi_d%27un_faune_%281876%29_15.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 444: Et froids, comme une source en pl eurs, de la pl us chaste :
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 452: Qu’il disperse le son dans une pl uie aride,
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 466: » Ou pl onge…
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 506: » Et le spl endide bain de cheveux disparaît
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 527: » Sous les repl is heureux d’une seule (gardant
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 528: » Par un doigt simpl e, afin que sa candeur de pl ume
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 555: Sans pl us il faut dormir en l’oubli du blasphème,
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 559: Coupl e, adieu ; je vais voir l’ombre que tu devins.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 561: 195 exempl aires dont 20 sur japon
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 706: 195 kpl joista 20 japanilaiselle
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 770: Omatuntoni turhaan huutaa minulle, että se haluis prostituoidun sydämen. Tämän ensimmäisen rakkauden minussa inspiroimat erittäin ratkaisevat pohdiskelut vieraantuivat suuresti kaikista naisista ja johtivat minut parantumattomimpaan pernaan. Aluksi kiihkeä intohimoni tämän naisen linjoja, ääntä, hajuvettä ja ulkoista viehätystä kohtaan muuttui absoluuttiseksi pl atonismiksi. Hänen moraalinen olemuksensa jäädytti aistini ikuisiksi ajoiksi: niistä tuli puhtaasti mietiskeleviä. Jos näkisin hänessä rakastajattaren, se etoisi minua tänään! Yhden ainoan kerran elämässäni (siellä Louvressa) tunsin sen turpoavan. Taino, ehkä vähän useamminkin. Silti vittu!
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 791: ploads/2020/06/162cm-Realistic-Sex-Doll-Analise-7-247x296.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 863: Toissapäivänä valtakunta menetettiin kakan iskettyä tuulettimeen; eilen, imperiumi, sillä hatun kärkeä ei palautettu. Tietäkää että arvostan tyhjät asiat - tyhjät - niiden käypään arvoon. Ei mitään! mutta se on niin hyödyllinen asia, ettei Jumala itse halveksinut turvautua siihen nyhjästäxeen maailman tyhjästä: ja me huomaamme sen tarpeelliseksi joka päivä. Ilman mitättömyyttä, Jumala tunnustaa impl isiittisesti, hänen olisi ollut lähes mahdotonta luoda esineiden tulemista. Olemme vain ikuinen "eipä ihmeempää". Ei mitään on mustaa ainetta, sine qua non, satunnaista, jota ilman emme puhuisi täällä tänä iltana. Ja erityisesti se, mikä meitä huolestuttaa, minulla on syytä epäillä sitä. Kerro, mitkä asiat huolestuttaa sinua?
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 936: - Jopa jättäen pois ne älykkäät naiset, joilla ei ole lukua, jotka ohittavat tuntemattomien nöyryytysten alaisena, kumartuvat köyhien, kärsivien, karkotettujen, hylättyjen yli ja odottavat kaikesta palkinnox vain hieman pilkkaavaa hymyä niiltä, jotka eivät jäljittele heitä , ― on, ja tulee aina olemaan naisia, jotka ovat ja tulevat aina olemaan riittävän inspiroituneita muustakin kuin nautinnonvaistosta! Eikö näillä ole mitään tekemistä tässä laboratoriossa tai kysymyksessä? ― Ei vaan nämä jalot ihmiskukat, jotka kaikki säteilevät todellista rakkauden maailmaa, sä saat ne multa ilmatteexi lisävarauksetta ja ilman jälkivaatimusta juuri nyt, tukemaan teesiäni joka koski ostettavia tai vallotettavia ämmiä, niistä yhtään särkymättömänä ja lopullisena. Pidä hyvänäs, sillä kuka tollasia kuivapilluja viizisikään bylsiä. Madonnat on luku erixeen, me pojat kuolataan vaan huoria. Tämä antaa meille mahdollisuuden päättää jälleen kerran Hegelin sanalla: "Se on sama asia sanoa asia kerran tai toistaa se aina." Plus ca change, pl us c'est la même chose.»
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 961: Valtavat pilarit tukivat, välimatkan päässä, basalttikupolin etupiiriä muodostaen siten gallerian aulan istuinosan sisäänkäynnin oikealle ja vasemmalle puolelle. Niiden koristelu, jossa syyrialaista makua uudistui, edustivat tyvestä huipulle upeita lyhteitä ja ohuita hopearuohoja sinertävällä pohjalla. Holvin keskelle, pitkän kultaisen sauvan kärkeen putosi voimakas lamppu, tähti, jonka sähkösäteet varjosi taivaansininen maapallo. Ja kovera holvi, tavallinen musta, hirviömäisen korkea, riippuva, haudan paksuus, tämän kiinteän tähden kirkkaus: se oli taivaan kuva, sellaisena kuin se näyttää, musta ja tumma, yli kaiken pl aneetan. Tunnelilmaisen tunnelmaista tunnelmaa. (jatkuu).
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 33: Hadaly play:none">Ektopl asmaa
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 34: ploads/2020/04/IMG_4185-4.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 63: Malebranche was giving in to laws of cause an effect by pl acing a greater emphasis than he had previously done on his occasionalist account of causation, and particularly on his contention that God acted for the most part through "general volitions" and only rarely, as in the case of miracles, through "particular volitions". A bitter dispute ensued between Malebranche and his fellow Cartesian, Arnauld, whose name I remember from Chomsky's airy forays to Port-Royal grammar in the 60's. Over the next few years, the two men wrote enough polemics against one another to fill four volumes of Malebranche's collected works and three of Arnauld's. Arnauld's supporters managed to persuade the Roman Catholic Church to pl ace Nature and Grace on its Index of Prohibited Books in 1690, and it was followed there by the Search nineteen years later in 1709. (Ironically, the Index already contained several works by the Jansenist Arnauld himself.) Somebody blamed Malebranche for being a Spinozan, which Nick himself vehemently demented. 1715 - Malebranche dies.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 132: When the season closed, García immediately took his operatic troupe to New York. This was the first time that Italian opera was performed in New York. Over a period of nine months, Maria sang the lead roles in eight operas, two of which were written by her father. In New York, she met and hastily married a banker, Francois Eugene Malibran, who was 28 years her senior. It is thought that her father forced Maria to marry him in return for the banker's promise to give Manuel García 100,000 francs. However, according to other accounts, she married simpl y to escape her tyrannical father. A few months after the wedding, her husband declared bankruptcy, and Maria was forced to support him through her performances. After a year, she left Malibran and returned to Europe. Malibran is most closely associated with the operas of Rossini. Norma kyllä oli Bellinin. Yhtään Malibranin levytystä ei ole säilynyt.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 134: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5e/Charles-Auguste_de_B%C3%A9riot_by_Charles_Baugniet_1838.jpg/440px-Charles-Auguste_de_B%C3%A9riot_by_Charles_Baugniet_1838.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 135: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/7e/Marietta_Alboni_by_Charles_Vogt.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 140: Alboni was born at Città di Castello, in Umbria. She became a pupil of Antonio Bagioli [it] of Cesena, Emilia–Romagna, and later of the composer Gioachino Rossini, who became her 'perpetual honorary adviser' in (and then the principal of) the Liceo Musicale, now Conservatorio Giovanni Battista Martini, in Bologna. Rossini tested the humble thirteen-year-old girl himself, had her admitted to the school with special treatment, and even procured her an early engagement to tour his Stabat Mater around Northern Italy, so that she could pay for her studies. Hmm... A favourable contract was signed by Rossini himself, "on behalf of Eustachio Alboni", Mariettas father, who was still a minor. The singer remained, throughout her life, deepl y grateful to her ancient "maestro", nearly a second father to her. Hmm hmm... Marietta oli aika pulska emäntä. Se lahjoitti köyhille koko omaisuutensa, sanoen että mikä laulaen tulee se viheltäen menee.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 213: Neiti Evelyn Habal jätti sitten hänet. Eikö se ole käsittämätöntä? Ihmettelen edelleen, miksi todella. Hiän oli osoittanut hänelle niin paljon todellista rakkautta siihen asti kun rahaa riitti! Pitemmittä puheitta, Andersson (vai oliko se Kitula?) päätti päivänsä. Purement et simpl ement.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 328: Mancanillier , mancanillier, s. m. Arbre à poison, Toxicodendron, de l'Amérique Méridionale. Raynal, dans son Hist. Philos, l'appelle Mancanillier, de l'Espa- gnol Mancanilla. il est gros comme un noyer, ses feuilles ressemblent à celles du pommier, et son fruit aux pommes d'apis. Ceux qui dorment à l'ombre de cet arbre perfide, sont exposés à ne pl us se réveiller. Les troupeaux le fuient ; et l'homme qui n'est pas averti va se reposer sous son ombrage et mange de ses fruits. Il faut donc que les animaux aient l'odorat pl us fin, que celui de l'homme.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 330: The manchineel tree (Hippomane mancinella) is a species of flowering pl ant in the spurge family (Euphorbiaceae). Its native range stretches from tropical southern North America to northern South America.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 332: The name "manchineel" (sometimes spelled "manchioneel" or "manchineal"), as well as the specific epithet mancinella, is from Spanish manzanilla ("little appl e"), from the superficial resemblance of its fruit and leaves to those of an appl e tree. It is also known as the beach appl e.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 334: A present-day Spanish name is manzanilla de la muerte, "little appl e of death". This refers to the fact that manchineel is one of the most toxic trees in the world: the tree has milky-white sap which contains numerous toxins and can cause blistering. The sap is present in every part of the tree: the bark, the leaves, and the fruit.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 369: Ja humalainen ääni lauloi säädytöntä kupl ettia, ja kaikki tämä tanssi, kuten edellinen kuva, samalla tamburiinilla ja samoilla kastanetteilla.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 405: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/5b/Louise_Marie-Jeanne_Hersent_-_Daphnis_et_Chloe.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 424: Edison luettelee androidin osat insinöörimäisesti. Tästä syystä englantilainen aatelinen, joka oli hämmästynyt sähköasentajan kauheasta apl ombista, tunsi tieteen kylmän jäätävän hänen sydämensä tämän poikkeuksellisen selvän lausunnon johdosta. Rauhallisena miehenä hän ei kuitenkaan keskeyttänyt sanaakaan.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 462: ploads/2016/09/india15-1024x683.png" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 464: ploads/2020/03/kama-sutra-interracial-3.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 465: play-ent.com/img/toys-07-04-01.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 483: Katso: Idolilla on hopeiset jalat, kuin kaunis yö. Heidän maneerinsa odottaa vain lumista verinahkaa, malleolien uudelleenkasvua, vaaleanpunaisia kynsiä ja niiden suonet, eikö niin? kauniista laulajastasi. Vain, jos ne vaikuttavat kevyiltä lähestymistavaltaan, ne ovat vähemmän sellaisia todellisuudessa. Niiden sisäinen täyteläisyys saavutetaan elohopean raskaalla juoksevuudella. Tämä hermeettinen pl atinapaita, joka jatkaa niitä, on täytetty nestemäisellä metallilla ja kohoaa kaventuen "vasikan syntymäpaikkaan" asti, niin että kaikki paino kantaa itse jalkaa. Lyhyesti sanottuna ne ovat kaksi 50 kiloa pientä saapasta ja niiden kapina on kuitenkin melkein lapsellinen. Ne näyttävät kevyiltä kuin lintu, niin paljon voimakkaasta sähkömagneettista, joka inspiroi heitä ja joka elävöittää näiden kahden tulevaisuuden täydellisyyden leikkimistä.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 612: Sir William Crookes (17. kesäkuuta 1832 – 4. huhtikuuta 1919) oli englantilainen fyysikko ja kemisti. Crookes oli lähtöisin alkujaan köyhästä perheestä. Hänen isänsä Joseph oli uransa alussa räätälin apulainen, mutta vaurastui myöhemmin. Nuori Crookes pääsi Royal College of Chemistry -yliopistoon ennen 16. syntymäpäiväänsä vuonna 1848. Crookes löysi alkuaine talliumin vuonna 1861. Tallium on rotanmyrkky jolla voi poistaa ihokarvoja. Kemiallisten tutkimustensa ohessa hän keksi Crookesin radiometrin eli niin sanotun valomyllyn vuonna 1873. Kehittämiensä tyhjiöputkien avulla hän myös havaitsi katodisäteet tutkiessaan sähkön johtumista harvassa kaasussa. Crookes oli tyhjiöputkitutkimuksen pioneereja ja vuonna 1879 hän havaitsi ensimmäisenä, että aine voi esiintyä pl asmana. Crookes tuli tunnetuksi myös Daniel Dunglas Homen ja muiden meedioiden väitettyjen paranormaalien kykyjen testaajana ja hänellä oli hyvin myönteinen suhtautuminen spiritualismiin.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 622: Kexittinkö protopl asma Crooken pl asmasta tai kääntäen? Alkulima. Lortin pussit oli takuulla pullollaan alkulimaa. Entä ektopl asma? Ghostbusterseissa oli sitä. Joku oli pyyhkinyt sitä seinään sormilla. Varmaan nää kaveruxet taas.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 624: Max Schultze in 1861 proposed the "Protopl asm Doctrine" which states that all living cells are made of a living substance called Protopl asm. Thomas Huxley (1869) later referred to it as the "physical basis of life" and considered that the property of life resulted from the distribution of molecules within this substance. The protopl asm became an "epistemic thing". Its composition, however, was mysterious and there was much controversy over what sort of substance it was.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 644: Spiritismi: ektopl asma
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 653: "Mutta – nämä ovat sanoja, joihin olet menettänyt oikeuden lausua. Koska kattilasta nousevan savun vuoksi olet kieltänyt kaikki uskomukset, jotka niin monet miljoonat sankarit, ajattelijat ja marttyyrit olivat testamentanneet sinulle yli kuuden tuhannen vuoden ajan, te, jotka olette vain peräisin ikuisesta huomisesta, jonka aurinko voi hyvin olla että ei nousekaan (Hume). Mihin pidit tuskin eilisestä lähtien parempana edeltäjiesi niin sanottuja muuttumattomia periaatteita pl aneetalla, kuninkaat, jumalat, perheet, isänmaat? Tälle pienelle savulle, joka ne viheltää ja hajottaa ne tuulen mukaan, kaikkiin maan uriin, kaikkien meren aaltojen väliin! Kahdessakymmenessä viidessä vuodessa viisisataatuhatta veturihengitystä ovat riittäneet upottamaan "valaistuneet sielusi" syvimpään epäilyyn kaikesta siitä, mikä oli ihmiskunnan yli kuuden tuhannen vuoden uskoa.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 655: The Marmite de Papin : A True Kitchen Antique: When I was in Paris a coupl e of weeks ago I visited the Musée des Arts et Métiers, the museum of arts and trades. (Really one of the most interesting museums I've ever been to!) And while I was there I saw many things of interest to cooks, but especially this: The Marmite de Papin. Do you know what it is? The very, very first pressure cooker!Well, a model of the first pressure cooker, anyway.
xxx/ellauri175.html on line 33: SOWANA play:none">Misofransiaa
xxx/ellauri175.html on line 43: Das Schöne daran, Sowana-Gastgeberin zu sein, ist: Sie müssen nirgends hingehen. All unsere Produkte kommen zu Ihnen nachhause. Das ist unkompl iziert und bringt Ihnen noch dazu jede Menge Vorteile (Buchungsgutschein als Dankeschön für Ihre Buchung, Gastgeschenk Ihrer Wahl, Halbpreisprodukt/e Ihrer Wahl).
xxx/ellauri175.html on line 375: Mitähän se oli toi "nesteen jakaminen"? Voisko se olla tota protopl asmahössötystä? Olisko se niikö "nesteiden yhdistämisen" käänteisoperaatio? Samanthojen in vitro kasvatus ilman sukuelimien käyttöä? Ehkäpä. Tää kirja on aika pitkälle jo "moderni", ei enää fin de siècleä muuten kuin säätyläis- ja naisasenteiden osalta. No tää painos onkin vuodelta 1909.
xxx/ellauri175.html on line 551: Unohtaen sitten, millä korvaamattomilla esikoisoikeuksilla maksat itsellesi, omassatunnossasi, jokaisesta tämän kirotun ruokalajin linssikeitosta, jota nämä hyvinvoinnin aina pettyneet marttyyrit tarjoavat sinulle kylminä hymyinä - nämä taivaan huolimattomat, nämä, jotka on amputoitu uskosta, nämä itsensä karkurit, nämä, jotka on poistettu käsityksestä Jumalasta, jonka ääretön pyhyys on saavuttamattomissa heidän valehtelevalle kuolevaiselle turmeltuneisuudelle, katso sinäkin, säikähtäneen lapsen omahyväisyydellä tätä jäistä pl aneettaa, joka pyörittää muinaisen rangaistuksensa kunniaa. avaruuteen! Nyt tuntuu tuskalliselta ja turhalta muistaa, että ― muutaman käännöksen alla, tuskin suoritettuna tämän auringon pyöreässä vetovoimassa, joka jo pisti itseään kuoleman täpl illä, - sinut on kutsuttu jättämään ikuisesti tämä synkkä kupl a, yhtä mystisesti kuin ilmestyit sinne! Ja nyt hän edustaa sinulle kohtalostasi selkeimpiä.
xxx/ellauri175.html on line 615: – "Hei! loppujen lopuksi Hadaly vain tupl aa näyttelijäsi ylivoimaisesti! ohikulkija ei olisi ollut täysin väärässä.
xxx/ellauri175.html on line 778: Muista liike – niin luonnollista! ― Hadalysta kauniin Alician valokuvataittoon tässä ympäristössä? Ja alla lämpömittariin päin, joka sopii pl aneetasäteiden kalorien punnitsemiseen? improvisoitu selitys tälle laitteelle? osakemarkkinoiden kohtaus, niin ainutlaatuinen? Muistatko, kuinka selkeästi Hadaly kuvaili neiti Alicia Claryn tarkkaa wc:tä lukiessaan lampun alla ensimmäisen illan lähetystä vaunuissa? Tiedätkö, millä hienovaraisilla, millä uskomattomilla keinoilla tämä erityisen salainen selvänäköisyys on voinut tapahtua? Tässä se on: "Sinä olet kyllästynyt, tunkeutunut inhotun ja rakkaan elävän olennon hermostolla! Kuitenkin jossain vaiheessa, jos muistat, Hadaly otti sinua kädestä ja johdatti sinut hirvittävään laatikkoon, jossa lepäävät teatteritähden jäännökset. No, Sowanan hermosto oli toisen nesteen läheisen välityksen kautta yhteydessä sinun kanssasi tämän Hadalyn käden paineen ansiosta. Välittömästi hän lensi pois näkymättömissä verkostoissa, jotka jäivät hänen näennäisestä etäisyydestä huolimatta sinun ja kauniin rakastajatarsi väliin: sen vuoksi hän päätyi heidän ylenpalttiseen keskustaan, eli neiti Alicia Claryyn, vaunuun, joka vei hänet. Menlo Parkiin.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 39: Ruppari play:none">Samaa vaan
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 40: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5c/Genrich_Ippolitovich_Semiradsky_-_Roma%2C_1889.jpg/580px-Genrich_Ippolitovich_Semiradsky_-_Roma%2C_1889.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 53: According to Athenaeus, Praxiteles produced two more statues for her, a statue of Eros which was consecrated in the templ e of Thespiae and a statue of Phryne herself which was made of solid gold and consecrated in the templ e of Delphi. It stood between the statues of Archidamus III and Philip II. When Crates of Thebes saw the statue he called it "a votive offering of the profligacy of Greece". Olipa nokkela setämies. Pausanias reports that two statues of Apollo stood next to her statue and that it was made of gilded bronze. Pausanias is almost certainly correct in his claim that gilded bronze was used. Kokokultaiset pazaat olis lähteneet jonkun turistin tai mamun kassissa.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 59: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/d8/Jean-L%C3%A9on_G%C3%A9r%C3%B4me%2C_Phryne_revealed_before_the_Areopagus_%281861%29_-_01.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 60: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/dc/Jose_Frappa_-_Phryne.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 65: However, Athenaeus also provides a different account of the trial given in the Ephesia of Posidippus of Cassandreia. He simpl y describes Phryne as clasping the hand of each juror, pl eading for her life with tears, without her disrobing being mentioned. Craig Cooper argues that the account of Posidippus is the authentic version and that Phryne never bared her breasts before the court during her trial.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 69: Furthermore, Pseudo-Cooper continues that the evidence suggests that Idomeneus invented the more salacious version of the story, possibly in his desire to parody and ridicule the courtroom displ ays of Athenian demagogues. Considering his preference for attributing sexual excess to these demagogues, the provocative act of disrobing Phryne fits the character Hypereides had acquired in Idomeneus' work. As is not uncommon in the biographical tradition, later biographers failed to notice that earlier biographers did not give an accurate representation of events. The later biographer Hermippus incorporated the account of Idomeneus in his own biography. An extract from Hermippus' biography is preserved in the work of Athenaeus and Pseudo-Plutarch.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 75: Prostitution was a common aspect of ancient Greece (Fig.1) In the more important cities, and particularly the many ports, it empl oyed a significant number of peopl e and represented a notable part of economic activity. It was far from being clandestine; cities did not condemn brothels, but rather only instituted regulations on them.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 86: In the classical era of ancient Greece, pornai were slaves of barbarian origin; starting in the Hellenistic era the case of young girls abandoned by their citizen fathers could be enslaved. They were considered to be slaves until proven otherwise. Pornai were usually empl oyed in brothels located in "red-light" districts of the period, such as Piraeus (port of Athens) or Kerameikos in Athens. Seija harrasti keramiikkaa Bostonissa. "And what do you do Seija?" "I have been learning pottery." "Oh, ceramics" sanoi Mrs. Breckenridge, piruillaxeenko vai ei, paha sanoa.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 90: [Solon], seeing Athens full of young men, with both an instinctual compulsion, and a habit of straying in an inappropriate direction, bought women and established them in various pl aces, equipped and common to all. The women stand naked that you not be deceived. Look at everything. Maybe you are not feeling well. You have some sort of pain. Why? The door is open. One obol. Hop in. There is no coyness, no idle talk, nor does she snatch herself away. But straight away, as you wish, in whatever way you wish. You come out. Tell her to go to hell. She is a stranger to you. You feel relieved, your bollocks are feather light.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 92: As Philemon highlights, the Solonian brothels provided a service accessible to all, regardless of income. (One obolus is one sixth of one drachma, the daily salary of a public servant at the end of the 5th century BC. By the middle of the 4th century BC, this salary was up to a drachma and a half.) In the same light, Solon used taxes he levied on brothels to build a templ e to Aphrodite Pandemos (literally "Aphrodite of all the peopl e"). Even if the historical accuracy of these anecdotes can be doubted, it is clear that classical Athens considered prostitution to be part of its democracy.[citation needed]
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 99: As with any industry, porn has its own specific lingo. But instead of sales stats, porn abbreviations describe males and twats. With the Adult Entertainment Expo in Vegas this week, our office has been buzzing with words that would normally taboo in the workpl ace. Some elicit giggles, others blank stares and still others furrowed eyebrows, flushed cheeks and the occasional fainting. Rather than calling The evil HR director to deal with the questionable vocab, which would probably just get us all scratched, we dove head first into oral, vaginal and anal research like Freud, Marx and Jung.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 106: Candaulism Had to check Conservapedia for this one: "a sexual practice or fantasy in which a man exposes his woman, or pictures of her, to other peopl e for voyeur pl easure."
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 113: Hentai Very sexually expl icit Japanese anime.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 120: RTF Reverse titty fuck. The guy fucks his partner’s breasts while he pl aces his bottom on his or her face.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 130: Wall-to-wall carpet A series of unrelated sex scenes with no pl ot. Whoever said this was boring? He was right. Hizin paljon noita pissakakkajuttuja, onxnää tyypit vähän infantiileja? Toilet trainingista on jäänyt traumoja.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 139: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 150: The pl ot centres on the neurotic young priest Serge Mouret, first seen in La Conquête de Plassans, as he takes his orders and becomes the parish priest for the uninterested village of Artauds. The inbred villagers have no interest in religion and Serge is portrayed giving several wildly enthusiastic Masses to his compl etely empty, near-derelict church. Serge not only seems unperturbed by this state of affairs but actually appears to have positively sought it out especially, for it gives him time to contempl ate religious affairs and to fully experience the fervour of his faith. Eventually he has a compl ete nervous breakdown and collapses into a near-comatose state, whereupon his distant relative, the unconventional doctor Pascal Rougon (the central character of the last novel in the series, 1893's Le Docteur Pascal), pl aces him in the care of the inhabitants of a nearby derelict stately home, Le Paradou.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 152: The novel then takes a compl ete new direction in terms of both tone and style, as Serge — suffering from amnesia and total long-term memory loss, with no idea who or where he is beyond his first name — is doted upon by Albine, the whimsical, innocent and entirely uneducated girl who has been left to grow up practically alone and wild in the vast, sprawling, overgrown grounds of Le Paradou. The two of them live a life of idyllic bliss with many Biblical parallels, and over the course of a number of months, they fall deepl y in love with one another; however, at the moment they consummate their relationship, they are discovered by Serge's monstrous former monsignor and his memory is instantly returned to him. Wracked with guilt at his unwitting sins, Serge is pl unged into a deeper religious fervour than ever before, and poor Albine is left bewildered at the loss of her soulmate. As with many of Zola's earlier works, the novel then builds to a horrible climax. Well not really. It is more like a horrible anticlimax.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 154: The novel was translated into English by Vizetelly & Co. in the 1880s as Abbé Mouret's Transgression, but this text must be considered faulty due to its many omissions and bowdlerisations, as well as its rendering of Zola's language in one of his most technically compl ex novels into a prolix and flat style of Victorian English bearing little resemblance to the original text. Two more faithful translations emerged in the 1950s and 1960s under the titles The Sinful Priest and The Sin of Father Mouret.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 161: In a 1977 review, Vincent Canby of The New York Times criticized the pl ot, with its reliance on fantastical elements such as amnesia, as "a mixture of social realism and Walt Disney". He also called the acting "steadfastly unconvincing."
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 164: is first of all a misnomer because the priest is alive and well at the end. A mixture of social realism and Walt Disney, it is a tale about a delicate young French priest, Father Mouret (Francis Huster), who elects to take a parish in the provinces where the peasants have long since embraced every sin there is. The priest himself successfully sublimates his own lustful thoughts in prayer until one day he meets a strange young woman, Albine (Gillian Hills), who lives with her atheistic uncle in the remains of an old chateau set in the middle of a magic garden.Well, one thing leads to another and poor Father Mouret loses his memory long enough to lose himself to worldly pl easures in the garden with Albine, who, like Eve, tempts the man, though in this case the author is clearly in favor of appl e-eating. Things go very badly for the coupl e. The priest returns to his church and Albine commits suicide in a way that is unique in my movie-going memory: She smothers herself to death with calla lilies.The actors are steadfastly unconvincing. The one interesting character in the film is an old lady we meet only after her death—someone, we're told in shocked tones, who, during the Revolution, posed naked as a living-statue of Reason.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 170: Et le merveilleux Paradou du roman, ce paradis panthéiste, cet hymne à la nature, à l'amour – ces paysages décrits par Zola perdent toute vibration, toute poésie. On croit voir défiler les pages du catalogue Vilmorin où s'ébattent Serge et une Albine issue du Petit Echo de la Mode. Le film projeté ne montre pas la séquence du grenier, la découvert des toilettes féminines – les nombreux changements de robe d'Albine sont, dès lors, gratuits, irritants. Comme tous les autres acteurs, Gillian Hills (Albine) est mal dirigée, elle n'a aucune grâce, aucun naturel. Francis Huster (Serge), lui, a du charisme mais son dur combat, sa douceur sont hélas surtout perceptibles par le fard qui rantôt ranime, tantôt creuse un visage que des zooms inutiles amènent en gros pl an. Et pour avoir voulu donner aux paysages de la Sainte-Baume, du Lubéron, du Parc Floral d'Orléans une certaine unité, on aboutit à des tonalités froides, éteintes. Seules les intérieurs (l'église, la chambre de Serge, la salle à manger de la cure) gardent leurs contrastes, leurs valeurs. Les personnages n'existent guère, aucune vibration n'émane d'eux, ni de la nature cruelle ou triomphante, de ce Paradou, terre-mère bruissante de vie, féconde.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 172: La Faute de l'abbé Mouret est une déception sur tous les pl ans.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 184: Zola nous sort là un remake à la fois long et contempl atif, pl ein d’atermoiements amoureux et religieux et d’incessants namedropping de végétaux de toutes sortes (ce qui lui a été abondamment reproché à l’époque)(entre autres choses). C’est presque aussi chiant que l’original. Et en pl us il a changé la fin. (QUOI??? Comment?)
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 234: Aide-moi, puisqu'ainsi tu n'oses pl us me voir, liian karkeita, koska pelkäät harjoja,
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 277: Car tu voulais, je crois, me toucher, font un jour Sillä sä halusit hipl ata mua, vizi yhdessä
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 301: Épouvantes, songer pl us impl acable encore kauhuissa elää vielä leppymättömämpänä
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 302: Et comme suppl iant le dieu que le trésor ja anoa jumalalta että teidän armonne
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 304: D'angoisse, gardez-vous la spl endeur ignorée syömänä, vartioitte doldista loistoa
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 314: Toutefois expl iquez : oh ! non, naïve enfant, Silti selittäkää: Ehei, naivi lapsi,
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 332: Une spl endeur fatale et sa massive allure ! fataalin loiston ja massiivisen kilon!
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 372: Pleure parmi l'or vain quelque pl eur étranger Itke turhan kullan keskellä joku mamu-itkahdus,
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 467: genitaliën noun, voortpl antingsorganen noun geslachtsdelen Google Translate
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 469: Exampl es
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 502: plypsychology.org/freud-psychosexual.JPG?ezimgfmt=rs:555x338/rscb30/ng:webp/ngcb30" />
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 530: Vaikkei fallisuus ole kummonenkaan tyyppi sinänsä, tähän vaiheeseen liittyvät iänikuiset isä-äiti kompl exit, joita löytyy roppakaupalla saduista ja aikuisviihteestä. Milfejä bylsitään äidin sijasta ja setämiehet häärii pedofiileinä. Ihan mukaviahan nekin hommat ovat, varsinkin kun ne on kiellettyjä. During the phallic stage what the boy loves most is his penis. Harmi vaan että isällä on isompi ja äiti näyttää imevän sitä mieluummin. Isä ruuvaa irti kikkelin jos Shuco-auton avain häviää avaimenreiästä. Hence the boy develops castration anxiety. Tyttö on peniskade ja syyttää hännättömyydestä äitiään, mutta alistuu sitten äidin näyttämään sekundarooliin. Joopa joo.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 595: plus/2014/12_tsunami/img/staticmap-vert.png" />
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 657: 19. Hyvin pikaisen suihkun jälkeen meikkasin ja puin ylleni yhden harvoista mukaan ottamistani kaupunkiasuista: harmaat flanellihousut ja kermanvalkoisen kilpkonnakauluksisen angoraneuleen, jonka olin löytänyt Mitsutanin alennusmyynnistä vuosia sitten. Asun päälle puin keväisen vihreän takkini. Richard sitoi vielä kaulaani vihreän ja kullan värisen Hanae Morin vintagehuivin ja teki siihen monimutkaisen, hienostuneen solmun. En ollut tämän pl aneetan trendikkäin tyttö. Solmukaan ei niin hieno kuin monttöörillä.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 717: Much like her meticulously researched historical novels, author Sujata Massey carefully curates the family meals and lists them on a small chalkboard hanging from a wall of her kitchen on Baltimore. “Usually, I try to pl an my menus on Sunday,” says Massey, who lives in a late 19th-century Tuxedo Park home with her husband, Anthony, and children Pia, 16, and Neel, 13. “Tonight, they’re going to have coriander chicken.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 760: 62. Mayumi on niit pahexuttavia niitoja. NEET on lyhenne englannin kielen sanoista Not in Empl oyment, Education or Training. Niito on hallinnollinen luokitus, jota käytti noita (the witch is dead!) Britanniassa, mutta sen käyttö on levinnyt laajasti muihinkin maihin kuten Japaniin, Kiinaan ja Koreaan. Lyhenteellä kuvataan työelämän tai opiskelun ulkopuolella olevaa väestöryhmää. Se on nykyajan slangia. Narahdin. Ja näillä niitoilla on siis varaa asua Roppongissa? Ize asiassa asunto on Chibassa.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 869: O'Casey is from Finsbury Park, the eldest of three daughters of hospitality and retail workers. She is of Irish and a quarter Jewish descent; the pl aywright Sean O'Casey was her great-grandfather. O'Casey has dyslexia and attended a Steiner School.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 878: While Tyndall was inside Jordan hastily married his fiancee Miss Dior. Tyndall got sore and founded his own, even greater Britain movement. Make Britain Great Again. Bugger. Jordan's first wife was French socialite Françoise Dior, the niece of fashion designer Christian Dior. She, too, was a Nazi and helped fund various right-wing causes after the war. Dior had an incestuous relationship with her own daughter Christiane, before pl aying an active role in her child's suicide. Soon Dior found Jordan bourgeois and divorced him. Jordan's second partner Joanna Saffrany was probably a --- Hungarian!
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 892: In 1963, a report from the Defamation League found that Rockwell had only 16 “troopers” in residence with him in a rickety two-story barracks in Arlington, Virginia. The pl umbing was faulty and the American Nazis were subsisting on canned hash, chicken stew and even cat food, the report said.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 909: "Reacher is a brawny action figure whose expl oits would have been a good fit for the likes of Arnold Schwarzenegger or Sylvester Stallone back in the day, but feel less fun when delegated to a wimpy man like Tom Cruise."
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 915: "It is not just another dumb thriller. It's almost peerlessly self-important, weirdly incoherent and eerily smarmy. It's also mysteriously inept, considering that Tom Cruise pl ays the title role."
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 33: PAPPI ASTUU PASKAAN play:none">Katollista
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 90: Breviario eli breviarium (lat. brevis, "lyhyt") on hetkipalvelusten kirja, joka sisältää kristillisten (alkuperältään katolisten) hetkipalvelusten, kuten laudes, vesper ja kompl etorio, kaavat ja niissä lauletut virret, antifonit, psalmit, lukukappaleet, Raamatun kiitosvirret ja rukoukset.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 93: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/1b/Breviarium_Cologne.jpg" height="200px"/>
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 113: Joka aamu, heti kun hän nousi ylös seminaarissa, hän nakersi suklaa-Marieta aamupalalla. Illalla saattoi ottaa eteen laulaessa tuota kuuluisaa kupl ettia:
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 180: No Albine kyllästyy lopulta odottelemaan ja pussaa Sergeitä kesken tupl uuria. Sergei herää ja hölisee sekavia:
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 186: -- Kuinka onnistuin elämään ilman sinua? hän kuiskasi ojossa. Mutta en ollut elossa, olin kuin uninen eläin... Ja tässä olet minulle nyt! Ja sinä et ole kukaan muu kuin minä itte! Kuuntele, et saa koskaan jättää minua; sillä sinä olet minun hengenvetoni, sinä ottaisit pois henkeni. Pysymme toisissamme, so. minä sisällä ja sinä tuppena. Sinä tulet olemaan minun lihassani, niin kuin minä olen sinun, noin niinkö Eski Saarisen suhteellisuusteorian mielessä. Jos jätän sinut jonain päivänä, olkoon kirottu, kuivukoon ruumiini kuin hyödytön ja huono ruoho! Hän tarttui hänen käsiinsä ja toisti ihailusta vapisevalla äänellä: -- Kuinka kaunis oletkaan! Saanko pl uvan vai pussataanko ensin?
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 205: The 24th feature from Hong Sangsoo, doppelgänger of the talkative celeb guy in the last scene of the movie THE WOMAN WHO RAN follows Gamhee (Kim Minhee), a florist and the wife of a translator who never in 5 years time has left her for a moment from his sight. She has three separate encounters with friends while her husband finally is on a business trip. Youngsoon (Seo Youngwha) is divorced, turned lesbian (the coupl e likes to feed alley cats) and has given up meat and likes to garden in the backyard of her semi-detached house. Suyoung (Song Seonmi) is divorced, has a big savings account and a crush on her architect neighbor and is being hounded by a young poet she met at the bar. Woojin (Kim Saebyuk) works for a movie theater and hates it that her writer husband has become a celeb. Their meetings are polite, but not warm. Some of their shared history bubbles to the surface, but not much. With characteristic humor and grace, Hong takes a simpl e premise and spins a web of interconnecting philosophies and coincidences. THE WOMAN WHO RAN is a subtle, powerful look at dramas small and large faced by women everywhere. Basically, they are 40+ ladies who may have met at some art school and get a chance to compare notes on how well their childless lives have turned out. Gamhee used to be the celeb's girl friend until the movie theater attendant stole the guy. Now both of them are sorry that she did, but really not that much. The Éric Rohmer of South Korea.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 210: The whole spat seems so terrifically absurd and inconsequential. Life assumes a banal, wistful air when the tumult of youth is far behind you. Conflict is downpl ayed, and emotions are muted. The few unwanted masculine punctuations, all shot with the actors’ backs turned to the camera, seem to drive home the point that men’s opinions and feelings are not important here. In fact, they’re rather silly.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 212: Hong's and actress Kim Min-hee’s private affairs have come to bear in their work. The coupl e’s extramarital relationship, the subject of tabloid headlines in Korea, have seemed to inspire jealous intrigue and accusations of infidelity. Kim is an unbelievably skinny woman but pretty.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 245: The Demise of Father Mouret (French: La Faute de l'Abbé Mouret, "The Mistake of Father Mouret") is a 1970 French film directed by Georges Franju, based on the 1875 novel La Faute de l'Abbé Mouret by Émile Zola. Like the novel, the film is about Father Mouret, a young priest (pl ayed by Francis Huster) who is sent to a remote village in Provence, then has a nervous breakdown and develops amnesia. While recuperating, he meets and falls in love with a beautiful young woman, Albine (Gillian Hills), with whom he begins an idyllic relationship meant to recall the story of Adam and Eve. When he regains his memory, though, he is wracked with guilt, and ends the relationship, leading to tragedy for both.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 261: C'était l'amour avant le sexe, l'instinct d'aimer qui pl ante des petits hommes de 25 ans sous les robes blanches des bambines de 16 ans.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 296: -- Ja miksi rakastat minua? kysyi Albine uudelleen. Hän hymyili, mutta ei vastannut aluksi. Sitten hän sanoo: -- Rakastan sinua, koska tulit yhtäaikaa. Se kertoo kaiken... Nyt olemme yhdessä, rakastamme toisiamme. Minusta tuntuu, että en enää eläisi, jos en rakastaisi sinua. Olet hengitykseni. Hän alensi ääntään ja puhui unessa. -- Emme työnnä sitä sinne heti. Se kasvaa ensin sinun mahallasi. Sen täytyy kasvaa isommaxi, sen on oltava vahva... Muistatko kuinka rakastimme toisiamme! Mutta emme sanoneet sitä. Olemme lapsia, olemme tyhmiä. Sitten eräänä kauniina päivänä se tulee liian pl etkuxi, se pakenee sinua... No, meillä ei ole muuta asiaa; rakastamme toisiamme, koska meidän elämämme on rakastaa toisiamme. Albine, heittäen päänsä taaksepäin, silmäluomet täysin kiinni, pidätti hengitystään. Hän maisti tämän sanojen hyväilyn vielä lämpimän hiljaisuuden. - Rakastatko minua? Rakastatko minua? hän änkytti silmiään avaamatta.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 365: Villiintynyt puutarha oli se kiusaaja, jonka jokainen ääni opetti rakkautta. Permannolta tuli pyörtyneiden kukkien tuoksuja, pitkä kuiskaus, joka kertoi ruusujen häistä, orvokkien ahkeruudesta; eikä heliotroopeilla ole koskaan ollut sensuellimpaa intoa. Hedelmätarhasta kuului tuulen tuomia kypsiä hedelmiä, hedelmällisyyden rasvaista tuoksua, aprikoosien vaniljaa, appelsiinien myskiä. Niityt korottivat syvempaa ääntä, joka muodostui auringon suutelemien miljoonien ruohojen huokauksista, lukemattomien helteisten ihmisten laajasta valituksesta, jokien viileiden hyväilyjen pehmentämä, juoksevien vesien alastomuus. josta pajut haaveilivat ääneen halusta. Metsä puhalsi tammien jättiläismäistä intohimoa, korkeiden metsien urkulauluja, juhlallista musiikkia, joka johti tuhkan, koivujen, sarvipuun, pl ataanien häitä, lehtien pyhäkköjen pohjalla; kun pensaat, nuoret pensaat olivat täynnä ihastuttavaa tuhmuutta, toisiaan jahtaavien, ojien reunalle heittäytyneiden, toistensa iloa varastavien rakastajien melua keskellä suurta oksien kahinaa. Ja tässä koko puiston liitoksessa karkeimmat halaukset kuuluivat kaukaa, kallioilla, missä lämpö sai kivet turpoamaan intohimosta, missä traagisella tavalla rakastetut piikkiset kasvit ilman läheisiä lähteitä voisivat helpottaa. he kaikki sytyttivät itsensä tähdellä, joka laskeutui heidän sänkyynsä.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 409: Hän työnsi hänet hitaasti pois. Sitten, kun hän suuteli hänen polviaan, hän laittoi kätensä hänen kasvoilleen, ikään kuin karkottaakseen unen jäännöksen silmistään ja otsastaan. Tämä oli sitten tuntematon maailma, vieras maa, josta hän ei ollut koskaan haaveillut ilman tylsää pelkoa. Missä hän oli nähnyt tämän maan? Mistä unesta hän oli herännyt tunteakseen niin koskettavan tuskan nousevan lanteestaan, joka kasvoi vähitellen hänen rinnassaan, kunnes se tukehtui? Kylä heräsi eloon palattuaan pellolta. Miehet palasivat takkinsa olkapäillään uupuneiden eläinten tahdissa; naiset talojen kynnyksellä tekivät vetoavia eleitä; kun lapset ryhmissä ajoivat kanoja takaa kivillä. Hautausmaalla liukastui kaksi siiliä, poika ja tyttö, jotka kävelivät nelinjalkain matalaa seinää pitkin, jottei heitä näkyisi. Varpusparvet nukkuivat kirkon laattojen alla. Sininen puuvillahame oli juuri ilmestynyt papl in portaille, niin leveä, että se peitti oven.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 495: Hän oli täynnä tyyneyttä. Hänen paljaat kasvonsa muistuttivat kivipyhimyksen kasvoja, joita ei häirinnyt mikään hänen sisälmyxistään tuleva lämpö. Hänen sukkansa putosivat suorina poimuina, kuin musta käärinliina paljastamatta mitään hänen ruumiistaan. Albine perääntyi nähdessään rakkautensa synkän aaveen. Hän ei löytänyt vapaata partaakaan, vapaita hiuksia. Nyt hiän näki hänen leikattujen hiustensa keskellä kalpean täpl än, tonsuurin, joka huolestutti häntä kuin tuntematon sairaus, vaikka kapi, joku paha kipeys, kasvamassa siellä syömään onnellisten päivien muistoja.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 33: Intohimon Professori play:none">Himokasta
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 59: Claire oli Charlie Chapl inin tikkunekku jossain Limelight äänileffassa 1952 jossa Peppu näki sen poikasena kuin minä Haley Millsin Pollyannana. Claire oli 2v vanhempi kuin Roth.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 61: (Maggiekin oli sitä vanhempi. Se tykkäs milfeistä. Selvä äitifixaatio. Turbojalka kyseessä.) Claire ei ollut mikään söpö nykerönenä kylläkään vaan pikemminkin kotkamainen profiili, kova ja fragiili kuin posliini. Charlie on hukkapätkä ja aika pulskea. Oliko Chapl in syntyjään Israel Thornstein vaiko romani? Ei tiennyt izekään. Sekä USA että USSR piti sitä epäilyttävänä. Paljon väliä. Joku vammanen nyt kuitenkin. V. 1952 Charlie ei päässyt enää jenkkeihin.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 63: The film stars Chapl in as a washed-up comedian who saves a suicidal dancer, pl ayed by Claire Bloom, from killing herself, and both try to get through life. Täähän oli Rothin mielijuoni, se oli aina pelastavinaan damseleita distressistä ja sitten olikin se distress ize.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 67: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 91: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 102: Fauntleroy : One who strongly exhibits the tendencies of a blantant homosexual, or actually is a homosexual. Oftentimes used to describe purportedly straight men, during a displ ay of Homosexuality. Named after Little Lord Fauntleroy, a book by Frances Hodgson Burnett in 1885 that resulted in openly gay fashion trends.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 124: Mitähän Pili oli näkevinään John Le Carren vakoiluromaanissa A Perfect Spy? Vai pitikö se pikemminkin Davidista izestään? David reportedly enjoyed “pl aying” on his first wife’s suspicion that he was homosexual. The association between homosexuality and secrecy, furtiveness and potential treachery ensured gay characters were a recurring trope in Cold War-era spy fiction. John Le Carre's The Spy Who Came In From The Cold and Tinker, Tailor, Soldier, Spy include gay subtexts - made even more expl icit in the 2011 movie adaptation of the latter. Merry Xmas from the onanist and the whore!
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 128: Iranilainen dipl omaatti kuittas Rothin sattuvasti: sanctimonious little shit. Pilillä oli hyvin läheisiä homokavereita joille se esitti Straight Guy-imitaatioita. Uraniaani-isotooppi: virilisierter Mannling .
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 132: “I wanted to be morally serious like Joseph Conrad,” Roth said of his young self. “I wanted to exhibit my dark knowledge like Faulkner. I wanted to write literature. Instead I took my dick's advice and wrote Portnoy's Compl aint.” Stern, a lifelong friend, had noticed “a discrepancy between Philip as he told stories and Philip as he wrote stories.” The advice was of course excellent, with the resulting work putting Roth squarely in the middle of the literary map. Saatuaan juutalaisten palkinnon Roth sanoi et enää puuttuu feministipalkinto ja Kakutani Prize.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 142: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0a/Fagin_by_Kyd_1889.jpg/800px-Fagin_by_Kyd_1889.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 153: The trouble with reviewing The Ghost Writer a few weeks late is that Roth has already expl ained it for us. He is ever expl aining. Like David Susskind, he can’t shut up. The Ghost Writer, he told readers of The New York Times, “is about the surprises that the vocation of writing brings,” just as My Life as a Man “is about the surprises that manhood brings” and The Professor of Desire is “about the surprises that desire brings.”
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 155: Portnoy’s Compl aint “was concerned with the comic side of the struggle between a hectoring superego and an ambitious id….”
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 157: Portnoy, he says later on, “is about talking about yourself…. The method is the subject.” Likewise, “The comedy in The Great American Novel exists for the sake of no higher value than comedy itself; the redeeming value is not social or cultural reform, or moral instruction, but comic inventiveness. Destructive, or lawless, pl ayfulness—and for the fun of it” (Roth’s italics).
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 159: This isn’t Nabokov’s ice-blue disdain for the academic ninnyhammers who went snorting after his truffles. Roth, instead, worries himself, as though a sick tooth needed tonguing. He is looking over his shoulder because somebody—probably Irving Howe—might be gaining on him: “This me who is me being me and no other!” as Tarnopol expl ained at the end of My Life as a Man.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 203: Men när hon polisanmälde våldtäkten blev Paola Schietekat själv anklagad för att ha haft ”utomäktenskapl igt sex” och riskerade att dömas till 100 piskrapp och sju års fängelse. Hon valde att fly landet. ”Jag har aldrig varit mer lättad än när de stämpl ade mitt pass på flygpl atsen”, skrev Paola Schietekat.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 276: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 288: L'enfant y est heureux, bon élève et enfant de chœur, mais réservé et taciturne. De cette époque remontent les premiers émois masculins de Genet, en la personne du petit Lou Culafroy — qui deviendra pl us tard « Divine », héros et ensuite héroïne de Notre-Dame-des-Fleurs — ainsi que d’hommes pl us âgés, braconniers de passage ou marginaux égarés. Il obtient la meilleure note de sa commune au certificat d'études primaires.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 315: Acts 14:8 And there sat a certain man at Lystra, impotent in his feet, being a crippl e from his mother's womb, who never had walked.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 319: Pooh, NONE of these deal with impotence of the pecker specifically. Hasn't the good book got ANY comforting words to offer? No wonder peopl e get suicidal.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 326: Q: Hey Jay! Have you ever dealt with the Christian’s response to medications that are designed to help men with E.D.? I’m into my 60’s now and the equipment just don't work like it used to. I am contempl ating getting some help. I would appreciate your response. Thanks.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 353: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/24/Tolstoy_and_chekhov.jpg/300px-Tolstoy_and_chekhov.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 357: Hänen kuuluisin näytelmänsä on 1895 julkaistu Lokki kivellä. Lokki kärsi aluksi täydellisen epäonnistumisen Pietarissa ja saavutti suosiota vasta Moskovassa kolme vuotta myöhemmin. Tämän jälkeen ”tšehovilaiset” näytelmät saavuttivat yhä kasvavaa suosiota. Hänen viimeisiksi teoksikseen jäivät näytelmät Vanja-eno (1900), Kolme sisarta (1901) ja Kirsikkapuisto (1904). (Nimenomaan niin, ei mikään "Kirsikkapuutarha"!) Vuonna 1901 Tšehov solmi avioliiton näytelmiensä sankarittaren, Moskovan teatterin taiteellisen näyttelijättären Olga Knipperin (1868-1959) kanssa. Anton oli 41, Olga 33. No kohtahan Anton jo sitten kuolikin. Vuonna 1904 Tšehov oli hoidattamassa tuberkuloosiaan Badenweilerin kylpyläkaupungissa Saksassa, mutta menehtyi sairauteensa. In his last letter he compl ained about the way German women dressed.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 359: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/08/Knipper_2.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 362: On 25 May 1901, Chekhov married Olga Knipper quietly, owing to his horror of weddings. She was a former protégée and sometime lover of Nemirovich-Danchenko whom he had first met at rehearsals for The Seagull. Up to that point, Chekhov, known as "Russia's most elusive literary bachelor," had preferred passing liaisons and visits to brothels over commitment. For the rest, he lived largely at Yalta, she in Moscow, pursuing her acting career. In 1902, Olga suffered a miscarriage; and Americans have offered evidence, based on the coupl e's letters, that conception may have occurred when Chekhov and Olga were apart, although Russian scholars have rejected that claim. Perhaps the semen was conveyed from Yalta to Moscow by snail mail.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 33: Ford Fiesta play:none">Homokasta
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 70: Is this the little boy at pl ay?
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 98: Noniin, kirja alkaa erään Cohenin antisemiittisellä ja eräiden naisten misogyynisellä kuvailulla. Cohnissa oli kivenkova jääräpäinen juutalainen piirre. Se näki untakin Francesin nalkutuxesta. Ernesto on kade kirjailijakollegoille kuin joku ämmä, excuse my French. Hyvin lähtee Ernesto. Hemingway sanoi Purpl e Landista:
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 99: For a man to take it at thirty-four as a guide-book to what life holds is about as safe as it would be for a man of the same age to enter Wall Street direct from a French convent, equipped with a compl ete set of the more practical Horatio Alger books. Niitähän se Pilikin luki poikasena.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 102: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 105: Purpl e Land
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 109: The Purpl e Land is a novel set in 19th-century Uruguay, first published in 1885 under the title The Purpl e Land that England Lost . Initially a commercial and critical failure, it was reissued in 1904 with the full title The Purpl e Land, Being One Richard Lamb's Adventures in the Banda Orientál, in South America, as told by Himself .
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 115: Venezuela, c. 1875. Abel, a young man of wealth, fails at a revolution and flees Caracas into the uncharted forests of Guayana. Surviving fever, failing at journal-keeping and gold hunting, he settles in an Indian village to waste away his life: pl aying guitar for old Cla-Cla, hunting badly with Kua-kó, telling stories to the children.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 117: After some expl oring, Abel discovers an enchanting forest where he hears a strange bird-like singing. His Indian friends avoid the forest because of its evil spirit-protector, "the Daughter of the Didi." Persisting in the search, Abel finally finds Rima the Bird Girl. She has dark hair, a smock of spider webs, and can communicate with birds in an unknown tongue. When she shields a coral snake, Abel is bitten and falls unconscious.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 153: The Lady Brett Ashley character is a British, charismatic, and independent woman with a drinking problem. She is the love of Kake's life and she loves him too, but she (and Kake) both see his impotence as a possible obstacle to a relationship as she leads a promiscuous life of romantic adventures. She is waiting to get divorced from the aristocrat from whom she got her title, and then pl ans to marry Mike Campbell. She is terminally unhappy and always wanting someone else. She falls in love with Romero at the bullfight and becomes his inspiration at the ring.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 159: Montoya is the owner of the hotel in Pampl ona where Kake and his best friends, the bullfighters, stay. He shares a special bond with Kake. A French war obligation I bet.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 169: Wayne Bidwell Wheeler (November 10, 1869 – September 5, 1927) was an American attorney and longtime leader of the Anti-Saloon League. The leading advocate of the prohibitionist movement in the late 1800s and early 1900s, he pl ayed a major role in the passage of the 18th amendment to the United States Constitution, which outlawed the manufacture, distribution, and sale of alcoholic beverages.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 173: Wheeler's career hit its high point with the passage of the Eighteenth Amendment and the Volstead Act in 1920. As enforcement of Prohibition became increasingly difficult, federal agencies resorted to draconian measures including poisoning alcohol to try to dissuade peopl e from consuming it.[6] Wheeler's refusal to compromise, for exampl e by amending Prohibition measures to allow for consumption of beer, made him appear increasingly unreasonable. His influence began to wane, and he retired in 1927.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 181: Whereas Hemingway wrote passionately about boxing and his own prowess, others, like Dempsey, saw something else. “There were a lot of Americans in Paris and I sparred with a coupl e, just to be obliging,” the Champ said. “But there was one fellow I wouldn’t mix it with. That was Ernest Hemingway. He was about twenty-five or so and in good shape, and I was getting so I could read peopl e, or anyway men, pretty well. I had this sense that Hemingway, who really thought he could box, would come out of the corner like a madman. To stop him, I would have to hurt him badly, I didn’t want to do that to Hemingway. That’s why I never sparred with him.” Hemingway’s frequent sparring partner and fellow writer Morley Callaghan offered another sobering account of his training partner, saying, “we were two amateur boxers. The difference between us was that Ernie had given time and imagination to boxing; I had actually worked out a lot with good fast college boxers.” I had never seen Mr. Hemingway box, of course. But I will say this: the confidence of mediocre men is a fucking superpower. I have met many versions of this guy. Hell, I’ve sparred with the dude myself.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 193: The conventional view is that Hemingway’s true “religion” — insofar as he can be said to have one at all — is his famous “Cod”: that in order to give meaning to life, one had to live by some set of ethical principl es.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 201: Still, the fact that they bring up Hemingway’s Catholicism at all confirmed my own suspicions of a deeper, clear-eyed spiritual sensibility lurking behind all of Hemingway’s naturalistic pl ots — forcing me to reconsider everything I had previously thought about the man. I see Catholicism as pl aying a central role in Hemingway’s literary vision and moral landscape. Non-catholics just turn away from the religious clues in his work to focus on his public image, war expl oits, and psychological instability — all the while missing that singularly under-reported and significant aspect of Hemingway’s life as a writer: his Catholicism.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 203: Hemingway was raised in a Congregationalist Protestant home, and his first conversion to Catholicism occurred when he was a 19-year-old and volunteer ambulance driver in Italy during World War I. Two weeks into the job, he was delivering candy (LOL) to soldiers on the frontlines when he was hit by machine-gun fire and more than 200 metal fragments from an expl oding mortar round. An Italian priest recovered his body, baptized him right on the battlefield and gave him the last rites.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 207: “A big Austrian trench mortar bomb of the type that used to be called ash cans, expl oded in the darkness. I died then. I felt my soul or something come right out of my body, like you’d pull a silk handkerchief out of a pocket by one corner. It flew around and then came back and went in again and I wasn’t dead anymore.”
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 216: Unfortunately, his subsequent divorces and additional marriages, drunken brawling, domestic abuse, poison pen letters, paranoia, megalomania, and habitual womanizing tarnished his youthful sense of himself as a “super-Catholic.” Hemingway never wanted to be known as a “Catholic writer” because he simpl y felt he couldn’t live up to the responsibility.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 218: In a letter to his friend Father Vincent Donavan in 1927 just before he married his second wife, Hemingway wrote, “I have always had more faith than intelligence or knowledge and I have never wanted to be known as a Catholic writer because I know the importance of setting an exampl e — and I have never set a good exampl e.”
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 224: The first time I read Hemingway’s books, I found an irrepressible piety and sense of the sacred permeating all his naturalistic pl ots. Had I known then about his Catholicism, it would have clarified things — and made the books better.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 225: And although Hemingway never related to the surface aspects of American Catholic life, he wrote at least one work expl icitly about Christ, “Today is Friday,” a dialogue between three Roman soldiers present at the crucifixion discussing how well Jesus had died and the grace he showed under pressure.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 227: Knowing these things does not expl ain away all the troubling aspects of Hemingway’s egocentric personal life — his public inebriations, domestic abuse, womanizing, and suicide, but it helps me to understand the kinds of peopl e Hemingway admired, their motivations and ideals, and the brave, virtuous person he was attempting to become.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 236: ploads/2015/05/Keen-eye.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 260: Turauxen on kirjoittanut joku Anders Hallengren, an associate professor of Comparative Literature and a research fellow in the Department of History of Literature and the History of Ideas at Stockholm University. Heserved as consulting editor for literature at Nobelprize.org. Dr. Hallengren is a fellow of The Hemingway Society (USA) and was on the Steering Committee for the 1993 Guilin ELT/Hemingway International Conference in the Peopl e’s Republic of China. Among his works in English are The Code of Concord: Emerson’s Search for Universal Laws; Gallery of Mirrors: Reflections of Swedenborgian Thought; and What is National Literature: Lectures on Emerson, Dostoevsky, Hemingway and the... Pelkkiä noloja setämiehiä!
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 263: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/90/Grace_and_Ernest_Hemingway_1899_%28cropped%29.jpg/440px-Grace_and_Ernest_Hemingway_1899_%28cropped%29.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 268: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/67/Clarence_Grace_Hemingway_Family_1900.jpg/640px-Clarence_Grace_Hemingway_Family_1900.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 271: ploads/2018/06/fig2-3.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 272: ploads/2018/06/fig3-1.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 279: On October 1, 1896, Hall married Clarence Hemingway. The coupl e moved into Ernest Hall's large home. Clarence oli väpelö kotivävy joka masentui ja tuskin kävi kotona, jossa Ernestine mälläsi ja huusi kuin laiva oopperaäänellä. No eihän tästä voi muuta tulla kuin homoja. Ernesto ei muuten ollut perheen ainut suikkari.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 286: To read Hemingway has always produced strong reactions. When his parents received the first copies of their son’s book In Our Time (1924), they read it with horror. Furious, his father sent the volumes back to the publisher, as he could not tolerate such filth in the house. Hemingway’s apparently coarse, crude, vulgar and unsentimental style and manners appeared equally shocking to many peopl e outside his family. On the other hand, this style was precisely the reason why a great many other peopl e liked his work. A myth, exaggerating those features, was to be born.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 312: There is an illuminating text in William James (1842-1910) which is both significant and reminiscent, bridging the gap between Puritan moralism, its educational parables and exempl a, and lost-generation turbulent heroism. In a letter written in Yosemite Valley to his brother Henry William James wrote:
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 316: The courageous Wile E. Coyote thus serves as a moral exampl e for all Americans.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 318: ploads/2018/06/fig1-3.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 321: But what about the ugliness, then? What about all the evil, the crude, the rude, the rough, the vulgar aspects of his work, even the horror, which dismayed peopl e? How could all that be compatible with moral standards? Niin, sas se!
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 336: When writing The Garden of Eden he appeared as a redhead one day in May 1947. When asked about it, he said he had dyed his hair "by mistake." In that novel, the search for compl ete unity between boy lovers is carried to extremes. It "may seem" that the halves of the Platonic homoerotic myth (once cut in two by Zeus and ever since longing to become a spoon again) are uniting here.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 362: “Papa. You can call me that.” Smoke filled the small room as a young coupl e smoked cigarettes.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 386: “Prosecco and peach. It's new here. It will catch on. The peopl e will drink it.” Papa was in Italy to see his friend Ole Anderson, an old heavyweight prizefighter who lived in Fossalta di Piave now. He was always getting into trouble with bad peopl e. Papa wrote a story about him once. A coupl e of men wanted to kill him in the story. Papa was in Venice to see his friend Juice, the owner of this bar Harry's, first. A man named Cole Anderson was shot outside Harry's two days ago so Papa told Juice to ask around and a man told him he'd be at Harry's today. The likeness of Ole and Cole's names drew Papa in.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 396: Nick accepted and the American lifted the walking stick and thrust it towards his head, snapping it loudly. Then he handed the broken pieces to Nick. Nick looked at the broken pieces and saw his life, spl it from his younger days. He hadn't always been a killer but he had always thought he was a big man until he met Papa.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 472: “No, you're not a man for that. Even in war. I've seen it. Or what you did. Not how you mean. Have child, that what man does.” Papa ran the back of his hand on his cheek and felt the tape on his glasses. “That tree. A man pl anted that.”
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 474: The tree sat in the middle of the sidewalk, grown up from a small patch of dirt and out of pl ace in the sea of cobblestones. There hadn't been soil on this ground in years that hadn't been trucked in by men.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 480: “Leaving for Fossalta di Piave in the morning.” Nick felt guilty about the peopl e he'd killed and he looked for a reason not to go through with Ole Anderson.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 496: A few feet across the room hung Cézanne's Les Joueurs de carte (The Card Players). Two men face each other pl aying cards on a small table. “It's the man on the right, Juice.” Juice looked at Papa with concern. “The villain. Sometimes it's hard to tell. But you can trust a man who smokes a pipe. The man on the left shows us his cards. An honest man. Cézanne knew that.”
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 518: The Americans paid their tab and stepped outside. Cobblestones ran through narrow alleys and slightly less narrow streets that led to the sea with buildings all along. Across from Harry's, a white building stood next to a red one. The Americans glanced at the spot the peopl e had been killed. It was a few feet into the street and in line with the stark change in color between the buildings. Four children walked over the spot carelessly. They jumped and skipped happily to where the men couldn't see them.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 528: They stepped past a small cafe. Peopl e sat outside on tables under umbrellas. “Let's save ourselves here.” They walked past the cafe. Balconies hung over the narrow street with pl ants hanging down, breathing in the rain.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 536: The Americans stepped into a dark music hall. Four men onstage pl ayed the blues. Low and slow. A few peopl e sat at tables smoking. The band got louder and Papa saw Nick Adams at one of the tables.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 558: Nick Adams hoped Papa knew him or knew boxing or anything. He wanted to hear a reason not to kill the man. The band pl ayed fast and loud and the lights pl ayed off the horn man's saxophone. It was dark so the ever-changing light on the saxophone illuminated everyone's eyes.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 574: “They kill them for less nowadays,” Papa said. There they were, less than three hours after meeting, and Papa's motive had compl etely changed. He wanted to warn Ole Anderson but didn't think he'd do anything about it anyway. He thought there was no reasoning with Nick Adams either.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 576: The horn man pl ayed from his heart. He pl ayed to their hearts. He raised a question and an answer and he gave a portrait of a man. The lights flickered off his horn and illuminated everyone's eyes except Nick Adams' looked black in the dark room.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 606: Ernest Hemingway squirmed as his second wife, Pauline, read aloud in 1927 from Henry James' novel The Awkward Age. Hemingway wondered why James bailed his characters out of their frequent inactivity by inserting a drawing room scene; and, as he was to do frequently during the next thirty years, he freely criticized the quality of James' works, "and knowing nothing about James he seems to me to be a shit." Too, he was quick to criticize the male protagonists of James,". .and the men all without any exception talk and think like fairies except a coupl e of caricatures of brutal outsiders". Carlos Baker observes that Hemingway, the "brutal outsider" himself, was at this time publishing Men Without Women, whose sales had reached 15,000 in the first three months after publication. But now Hemingway, the outsider, clearly in literary ascendance, was becoming acquainted with James' works; his artistic and personal recognition of James in future years was, for the most part, to take the form of a peculiar enmity. He was often to refer to James in highly derisive terms almost to the end of his own life. Hemingway's lese majeste towards him takes the form of a sporadic obsession that reveals more about Hemingway's maturity than James' imagined frailties.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 608: Young Hemingway vilified James for his choice of themes and characters, but more importantly, he viciously maligned him for the traumatic but obscure accident that had occurred in his youth. Leon Edel has summarized the known facts of the injury as gathered from James´ writings and other sources. The "obscure hurt" was reported by James to have happened at the "same dark hour" of the onset of the Civil War, in other words, May 1861 (Edel, Years 176-77). But actually the causative factor, the fire at West Stables in Newport, occurred on the night of October 28, 1861 (177). James relates that he had jammed himself into "an acute angle between two fences" trying to make "a rusty, quasi-extemporised old engine work" in order to help put out the stable fire. Injured in this attempt, James later provided only incompl ete details and stated that the disaster was "intimate, odious, horrid, catastrophe, obscure, and most entirely personal" (175).
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 621: Another bit of imaginative projection upon James’ life can be found in Ernest Hemingway’s letters. This novelist, on learning that Brooks had written that James was “prevented by an accident from taking part in the Civil War,” immediately incorporated this into his nearly finished novel, The Sun Also Rises. In Chapter 12, Jake Barnes refers to his World War I accident, and Gorton says, “That’s the sort of thing that can’t be spoken of. That’s what you ought to work up into a mystery. Like Henry’s bicycle.” Barnes repl ies it wasn’t a bicycle; “he was riding horseback.” (In his memoirs, James spoke of having had a “horrid” but “obscure hurt.” He had strained his back during a stable fire while serving as a volunteer fireman.) Hemingway had originally inserted James’ name in the novel, but Scribner’s editor, Maxwell Perkins, vetoed this. Hemingway insisted. They finally compromised on the “Henry” alone. F. Scott Fitzgerald wrote to Brooks, “Why didn’t you touch more on James’ impotence (physical) and its influence?” The castration theme was picked up by R.P. Blackmur, Glenway Wescott, Lionel Trilling, and F.O. Matthiessen in their critical writings.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 625: These larger emotions apparently do not touch the single-minded Novick. He is caught by l’initiation première. “The passage seems impossible to misunderstand,” he says. (For the full quote, which Novick does not provide,.) In a footnote, he asserts, “James had his sexual initiation in Cambridge and Ashburton Place.” A bit enigmatically, he also says, “[I]t would be fatal to expand on that in the book for which these are the [foot]notes.” We are left wondering why Novick thinks it would be “fatal” to have what would be a bit more evidence. And he still hasn’t named James’ partner. A sentence in which he appears to be rummaging around for expl anations says that the companion “seems to be a veteran, an officer.” He adds, “Henry hinted he was Wendell Holmes.” But it is Novick who is doing the hinting. Holmes was a close friend of Henry’s brother, William. Henry looked at Holmes with a certain aloofness.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 627: And then, Novick gives himself away. He writes in another footnote that Holmes was someone with whom James “might have been intimate.” “Might have been”? There’s incertitude for you. My surmise is that Novick is trying to support his hypothesis of James’ initial sexual experience, and that he picks the name handiest to him. Why not James’ closer friends, John LaFarge or Thomas Perry? Novick seems to want to link his two subjects. It is clear the homosexuality doesn’t bother him. He simpl y wants us to know that James was a sexual man and a loving person. Biographers often develop strange attachments to their subjects. (Indeed!)
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 629: Novick’s second “case” is as flimsy as the first, but it has more documentation. It is based on James’ letters from Paris between 1875 and 1876. He has met Ivan Turgenev, the Russian master, and finds himself moving among assorted Russians. One of them is Paul Zhukovski, son of a Russian poet who tutored Alexander II when he was a prince. Reared in the royal court, Zhukovski is soft, dependent, spoiled, and weak-willed, but graceful and entertaining. James has never known any Russians, and Zhukovski becomes an agreeable companion; he is “picturesque,” and while James tells his parents that “human fellowship” is not his specialty, the two get along very comfortably. They dine with Turgenev, and with countesses, a duke, princesses. They make sorties into cabarets and cafes. James reports that he and Zhukovski have sworn “eternal fellowship.” One could read sex into this–as Novick does–but it sounds more like the drinking and singing that often takes pl ace among young males, their swagger and “brotherhood.” At every turn, Novick introduces suggestions of a love affair.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 631: At the end of 1876, James moved to London. So far as we know, Zhukovski faded into the distance. James published seven books during the next three years and became a celebrity in London society. But Novick continues to allude to Zhukovski as if the relationship were of paramount importance to James. Only one letter from the Russian, written in 1879, survives. Zhukovski is in Italy and invites James to join him at the Villa Postiglione, his pension, at Posilipo, near Napl es. While in Rome, James reserves a room in the pension for five days.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 635: Writing to his sister Alice, James characterized Zhukovski as “the same impracticable and indeed ridiculous mixture of Nihilism and bric-à-brac as before.” He adds that Zhukovski always needs to be sheltered by a strong figure: “First he was under Turgenev, then the Princess Urusov, whom he now detests and who despises him, then under H.J. Jr. (!!), then under that of a certain disagreeable Onegin (the original of Turgenev’s Nazhdanov, in Virgin Soil) now under Wagner, and apparently in the near future that of Madame Wagner.” Novick bypasses these letters; he avoids looking at facts that might spoil his case. He does allude to the James remark about Zhukovski’s bric-a-brac, but he seems to misunderstand its irony. He claims that James was “cautious” about this visit because of crime and disease in the Napl es area–all this, says Novick, is “out of keeping with the collection of bric-à-brac with which Zhukovski was surrounded.” James may indeed have been referring to the villa’s human bric-a-brac.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 637: In a letter written from Sorrento to Grace Norton in Cambridge, he described a group of English persons he visited in Frascati after leaving Posilipo. They were of an “admirable, honest, reasonable, wholesome English nature,” in sharp contrast to the “fantastic immorality and aesthetics of the circle I had left at Napl es.”
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 639: So Novick is deprived of the happy romance he wanted to chronicle at Posilipo. He consoles himself by a detailed account of Zhukovski’s adoption into Bayreuth, his painting the sets for Parsifal and being considered a kind of son by the Wagners. Novick seems to be trying to walk down two streets at once–the street of the refinements of literary biography and the more rigid roadway of the prosecutorial argument. He attempts to turn certain of his fancies into fact–but his data is simpl y too vague for him to get away with it.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 646: Book II comprises a sort of mid-book idyll. The author offers it to us by way of contrast to the Paris scenes that went before. In this novel, Pampl ona will serve as a kind of anti-Paris, semi-rural and organic where the City of Light is urban and decadent. The woods outside Burguete where Kake and Bill fish for trout are even more different from Paris, and the sense of tranquility that the fishing trip creates in them and us could not be more different from the freneticism of the novel's opening chapters.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 648: Hemingway makes expl icit here the themes of irony and pity: the irony of Kake's situation (he is a kind of superman who nevertheless can't perform the most basic of manly activities, namely fucking) as well as the pity "we" (who have our penises in working order) feel for him. The writer does so in an extended section, rich with dialogue, that is meant to be funny but has not dated well. The joking between Kake and Bill, over breakfast and later at lunch, is certainly believable as such, but it's difficult for a contemporary audience to follow, because the references to Frankie Fritsch and so forth have grown obscure with the passage of time. (The reference to Bryan's death tells us exactly when these scenes are occurring: 1925.) Do note, however, that Kake's physical condition is alluded to — and quickly backed away from. ("I'd a hell of a lot rather not talk about it" could be the motto of Kake's stoic take on the world, while Hemingway's would be "I want to talk about it all the time".) The writer has established, however, that Kake's condition is not simpl e impotence (rather it is loss of limb, or shortening of the joystick) and that it was caused by an accident.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 650: Another theme of Kake and Bill's banter concerns the latter's status as an expatriate. He has fled America, with its prudish Anti-Saloon League and bourgeois President Coolidge (who famously said "The business of America is business"). Finally, note the gruff tenderness shared by Kake and Bill in these scenes. One of Hemingway's pl easures in life as in art was what we now call "male bonding," and in this case the bonding is poignant, as in some ways it repl aces the love that Kake cannot fully express with female companions. Haha, so you must mean dick, that's the only thing Bill has and they don't.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 652: More black humor: "Get up," Kake tells Bill, who repl ies "What? I never get up." Of course, it is Kake, not Bill, who never gets up. Later, trout (again, a phallic fish) try in vain to swim against the current of a waterfall, and — not so humorously — Kake reads a book about a man frozen inside a glacier whose wife awaits the reappearance of his body for twenty-four years. Kake is "frozen," too, only no one has the patience to await his unthawing.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 654: William Jennings Bryan (March 19, 1860 – July 26, 1925) was an American orator and politician. Beginning in 1896, he emerged as a dominant force in the Democratic Party, running three times as the party's nominee for President of the United States in the 1896, 1900, and the 1908 elections, always losing. He served in the House of Representatives from 1891 to 1895 and as the Secretary of State under Woodrow Wilson. Because of his faith in the wisdom of the common peopl e, he was often called "The Great Commoner". Pöljän näköinen kalju paxulainen.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 657: A Bryan is a hot guy that will love you with everything he has. Bryan's are funny, smart, caring, good at everything they do, have brown hair and brown eyes, a brown moustache, the cutest dimpl es and an awesome body. They make wonderful husbands and fathers. A Bryan will dedicate his whole life to his wife and family and never ask for a thing in return except to be able to watch his sports uninterrupted.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 668: Alfred Edward Woodley Mason was an English author and politician. He is best remembered for his 1902 novel of courage and cowardice in wartime, The Four Feathers. He is also known as the creator of Inspector Hanaud, a French detective who was an early templ ate for Agatha Christie's famous Hercule Poirot.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 669: Ilkeännäköinen mies jonka nenä kasvaa ozan suuntaisesti. The Four Feathers is a 1902 adventure novel by British writer A.E.W. Mason that has inspired many films of the same title. Against the background of the Mahdist War, young Faversham disgraces himself by quitting the army; this act the others perceive as cowardice, symbolized by the four white feathers they give him. Chicken! “buk, buk, buk, ba-gawk”! The story tells of his fight to reclaim his honour and win back the heart of the woman he loves. Bleeding heart, purpl e heart. Nää sydänjutut ottaa kyllä päähän. Mä ällöön sydämiä, ne näyttää katkaistuine putkineen tosi törkeiltä.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 687: Hens will either run for cover or freeze in pl ace.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 695: The compl aining hen will strut up and down outside the occupied box clucking.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 696: It is a protest with the intention of intimidating the occupier to vacate the nest. This rarely happens and sometimes the compl ainer will try to move the sitter out by cramming into the nest box with her.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 704: Roosters will sometimes try to find a good spot for a particular hen to have her nest. He will trampl e and rearrange the bedding clucking all the time.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 712: The second sound is a “rrrrrrr” sound. When chicks hear this they will run to Momma for cover or to the nearest hiding pl ace available. They will remain still and quiet until she lets them know it’s ok.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 718: Fear: A chick taken away from its mother will peep in fear – once you pl ace it back with Mama they will be quiet.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 721: Crowing is usually done by the rooster, although there are occasions when hens can crow too. Just like with peopl e.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 777: I have 3 Light Brahma girls..all seven months pl us old, no eggs yet. Can I start feeding them layer feed now? They seem healthy and happy, just not laying.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 797: Although he originally intended to be ironic when he proclaimed that women were the superior gender, many of the qualities he assigned to them were qualities he deepl y admired – realism and skepticism among them, but also manipulative skill and a detached view of mankind.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 803: It is the close of a busy and vexatious day—say half past five or six o´clock of a winter afternoon. I have had a cocktail or two, and am stretched out on a divan in front of a fire, smoking. At the edge of the divan, close enough for me to reach her with my hands, sits a woman not too young, but still good-looking and well dressed—above all, a woman with a soft, low-pitched, agreeable voice. As I snooze she talks—of anything, everything, all the things that women talk of: books, music, the pl ay, men, other women. No politics. No business. No religion. No metaphysics. Nothing challenging and vexatious—but remember, she is intelligent; what she says is clearly expressed... Gradually I fall asleep—but only for an instant... then to sleep again—slowly and charmingly down that slippery hill of dreams. And then awake again, and then asleep again, and so on. I ask you seriously: could anything be more unutterably beautiful?
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 817: is tied with Yogi Berra for most World Series doubles at 10 and holds the record for the most World Series hits at 58 for a pl ayer who never pl ayed for the New York Yankees, exceeded only by Yogi Berra and Mickey Mantle.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 818: He is also known as “Fordham Flash” pl ayed baseball for the New York Giants of the National League. Bill refers to him when talking about who attended which university. Frankie did go to Fordham.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 820: Bishop Manning was a Bishop in New York City, who pl ayed a prominent role in World War I. Kake refers to him, when discussing his school life, and showing who he was surrounded by. In 1939-40, Manning took a leadership role in the successful effort to force the City University of New York to rescind their offer of a professorship to the philosopher Bertrand Russell.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 821: When the Bishop was asked whether salvation could be found outside the Episcopal Church, he repl ied, "Perhaps so, but no gentleman would care to avail himself of it." One year prior to the U.S. entering World War I, Manning said:
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 825: If by Pacifism is meant the teaching that the use of force is never justifiable, then, however well meant, it is mistaken, and it is hurtful to the life of our country. And the Pacifism which takes the position that because war is evil, therefore all who engage in war, whether for offense or defense, are equally blameworthy, and to be condemned, is not only unreasonable, it is inexcusably unjust. Sorry Christ, we gotta move on, that's how the cookie crumbles. Phil Roth's 2 Swedish sluts were just pl ain wrong, and so were you J.C.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 828: Kipl ing naisissa
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 830: pling">The Ladies
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 831: Rudyard Kipl ing (1865–1936). Verse: 1885–1918. 1922.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 865: Through buyin’ suppl ies off ’er pa. kun ostin kamoja sen isältä.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 912: pling">MANDALAY
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 916: For the wind is in the palm-trees, and the templ e-bells they say: Sillä palmuissa tuulee ja kellot soittavat:
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 924: Where the flyin’-fishes pl ay, Mela sisällä etunojassa
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 956: An’ the sunshine an’ the palm-trees an’ the tinkly templ e-bells; ja palmuja ja päivänpaistetta ja niitä temppelikelloja.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 971: For the templ e-bells are callin’, and it’s there that I would be— Sillä siellä kellot mulle soittavat, siellä mä oisin tosi mieluusti---
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 978: Where the flyin’-fishes pl ay,
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 984: Unquestionably, Ernest Hemingway was anti-Semitic. Studded throughout his letters are nasty remarks about Jews. But Hemingway felt his prejudice had a pl ace in his fiction as well, most notably in “The Sun Also Rises,” his classic 1925 novel about a group of Paris expatriates at the bullfights in Pampl ona.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 986: Hemingway routinely describes Robert Cohn, introduced in the novel’s first lines as “the middleweight boxing champion of Princeton,” as a “kike” and a “rich Jew”; his obnoxiousness fuels the pl ot. (Cohn was based on Harold Loeb, a friend who gave Hemingway crucial support in getting his early work published; Hemingway could not forgive anyone who did him a good turn.) The anti-Semitic insult of writing a character like Cohn into his first major novel is breathtaking: it was not, like Hemingway’s letters, intended for private consumption only, but as characterization and a pl ot device in a work of fiction — a novel, as it turned out, written for the ages.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 999: Ernie was a product of a privileged upbringing whose first two marriages were to women of inherited wealth, which gave him the time to travel the world and develop as a writer without the pressure to make a living at it for the first decade of his career. Ernie had chronic traumatic encephalopathy, a degenerative brain condition that results from repeated head trauma that has been diagnosed in many boxers and football pl ayers.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 1022: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e4/Costillares.png/220px-Costillares.png" />
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 1046: The Sun Also Rises is a 1957 film adaptation of the 1926 Ernest Hemingway novel of the same name directed by Henry King. The screenpl ay was written by Peter Viertel and it starred Tyrone Power, Ava Gardner, Mel Ferrer, and Errol Flynn. Much of it was filmed on location in France and Spain in Cinemascope and color by Deluxe. A highlight of the film is the famous "running of the bulls" in Pampl ona, Spain and two bullfights.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 1048: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 31: JOSÉ DE SOUSA play:none">Sotarikollista
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 52: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 71: ple.com/profiles/images/henry-ward-beecher-3.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 76: In 1847, Beecher became the first pastor of the Plymouth Church in Brooklyn, New York. He soon acquired fame on the lecture circuit for his novel oratorical style in which he empl oyed humor, dialect, and slang. Over the course of his ministry, he developed a theology emphasizing God's love above all else. He also grew interested in social reform, particularly the abolitionist movement. In the years leading up to the Civil War, he raised money to purchase slaves from captivity and to send rifles—nicknamed "Beecher's Bibles"—to abolitionists fighting in Kansas. He toured Europe during the Civil War, speaking in support of the Union. Beecher oli selkeästi Lutherin linjoilla K.S. Laurilan raportoimassa teologis-poliittisessa kiistassa.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 80: Beecher's long career in the public spotlight led biographer Debby Appl egate to call her biography of him The Most Famous Man in America. Niitä on piisannut.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 81: Beecher married Eunice Bullard in 1837 after a five-year engagement. Their marriage was not a happy one; as Appl egate writes, "within a year of their wedding they embarked on the classic marital cycle of neglect and nagging", marked by Henry's prolonged absences from home. The coupl e also suffered the deaths of four of their eight children.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 85: Several members of Beecher's circle reported that Beecher had had an affair with Edna Dean Proctor, an author with whom he was collaborating on a book of his sermons. The coupl e's first encounter was the subject of dispute: Beecher reportedly told friends that it had been consensual, while Proctor reportedly told Henry Bowen that Beecher had raped her. Regardless of the initial circumstances, Beecher and Proctor allegedly then carried on their affair for more than a year. According to historian Barry Werth, "it was standard gossip that 'Beecher preaches to seven or eight of his mistresses every Sunday evening.'"
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 90: Henry Ward Beecher had publicly denounced Woodhull's advocacy of free love. Outraged at what she saw as his hypocrisy, she published a story titled "The Beecher-Tilton Scandal Case" in her paper Woodhull and Claflin's Weekly on November 2, 1872; the article made detailed allegations that America's most renowned clergyman was secretly practicing the free-love doctrines that he denounced from the pulpit. Woodhull was arrested in New York City and imprisoned for sending obscene material through the mail. The scandal spl it the Beecher siblings; Harriet and others supported Henry, while Isabella publicly supported Woodhull.The first trial was Woodhull's, who was released on a technicality.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 94: Stanton was outraged by Beecher's repeated exonerations, calling the scandal a "holocaust of womanhood". French author George Sand pl anned a novel about the affair, but died the following year before it could be written.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 96: At his best, Beecher represented what remains the most lovable and popular strain of American culture: incurable optimism; can-do enthusiasm; and open-minded, open-hearted pragmatism ... His reputation has been eclipsed by his own success. Mainstream Christianity is so deepl y infused with the rhetoric of Christ's love that most Americans can imagine nothing else, and have no appreciation or memory of the revolution wrought by Beecher and his peers.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 98: In 1865, Robert E. Bonner of the New York Ledger offered Beecher twenty-four thousand dollars to follow his sister's exampl e and compose a novel; the subsequent novel, Norwood, or Village Life in New England, was published in 1868. Beecher stated his intent for Norwood was to present a heroine who is "large of soul, a child of nature, and, although a Christian, yet in childlike sympathy with the truths of God in the natural world, instead of books." McDougall describes the resulting novel as "a New England romance of flowers and bosomy sighs ... 'new theology' that amounted to warmed-over Emerson". The novel was moderately well received by critics of the day.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 172: Alongside Seneca's apparent fortitude in the face of death, for exampl e, one can also view his actions as rather histrionic and performative; and when Tacitus tells us that he left his family an imago suae vitae (Annales 15.62), "imagonsa", he is possibly being ambiguous: in Roman culture, the imago was a kind of mask that commemorated the great ancestors of noble families, but at the same time, it may also suggest dupl icity, superficiality, and pretence.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 207: I am not born for one corner; the whole world is my business pl ace.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 210: You all sorely compl ain of the shortness of time, and yet have much more than you know what to do with. Your lives are either spent in doing nothing at all, or in doing nothing to the purpose, or in doing nothing that you ought to do. You are always compl aining that your days are few, and acting as though there would be no end of them. You are whiners.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 228: He then commenced his attempt to take Massagetae territory by force (c. 529), beginning by building bridges and towered war boats along his side of the river Oxus, or Amu Darya, which separated them. Sending him a warning to cease his encroachment (a warning which she stated she expected he would disregard anyway), Tomyris challenged him to meet her forces in honorable warfare, inviting him to a location in her country a day's march from the river, where their two armies would formally engage each other. He accepted her offer, but, learning that the Massagetae were unfamiliar with wine and its intoxicating effects, he set up and then left camp with pl enty of it behind, taking his best soldiers with him and leaving the least capable ones.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 232: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c9/Queen_Tomyris_and_the_head_of_Cyrus_the_Great.jpg/220px-Queen_Tomyris_and_the_head_of_Cyrus_the_Great.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 237: Having originated from Persis, roughly corresponding to the modern-day Fars Province of Iran, Cyrus has pl ayed a crucial role in defining the national identity of modern Iran. He remains a cult figure amongst modern Iranians, with his tomb serving as a spot of reverence for millions of peopl e. In the 1970s, the last Shah of Iran, Mohammad Reza Pahlavi, identified Cyrus' famous proclamation inscribed onto the Cyrus Cylinder as the oldest-known declaration of human rights, and the Cylinder has since been popularized as such. This view has been criticized by some Western historians as a misunderstanding of the Cylinder's generic nature as a traditional statement that new monarchs make at the beginning of their reign. Fucking Westerners, always belittling other peopl e's achievements.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 243: ploads/2018/05/ruth-snyder-front-page.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 266: Lowell married the novelist and short-story writer Jean Stafford in 1940. Before their marriage, in 1938, Lowell and Stafford were in a serious car crash, in which Lowell was at the wheel, that left Stafford permanently scarred, while Lowell walked away unscathed. The impact crushed Stafford's nose and cheekbone and required her to undergo multipl e reconstructive surgeries. No wonder they had a tormented marriage.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 271: these exuberant feelings and supersensible soap bubbles of ours." erityisherkkien saippuakupl ien avulla."
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 279: This screwball might kill his wife, then take the pl edge. Tää lonkero vois tappaa vaimonsa, sitten lopettaa.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 290: Lowell was a conscientious objector during World War II and served several months at the federal prison in Danbury, Connecticut. He expl ained his decision not to serve in World War II in a letter addressed to President Franklin Roosevelt on September 7, 1943, stating, "Dear Mr President: I very much regret that I must refuse the opportunity you offer me in your communication of August 6, 1943 for service in the Armed Force." He expl ained that after the bombing at Pearl Harbor, he was prepared to fight in the war until he read about the American terms of unconditional surrender that he feared would lead to the "permanent destruction of Germany and Japan." Well as it turned out it wasn't as bad as that, but countless beautiful pl aces were bombed beyond recognition. Lowell kept his Tolstoyan stance consistently in the subsequent wars as well. Even evil peopl e have exceptional sane moments. Lowell thought he was Hart Crane reincarnate.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 295: In 1941, bugler and career soldier Private Robert E. Lee Prewitt (Montgomery Clift) transfers from Fort Shafter to a rifle company at Schofield Barracks on the island of Oahu. Because Prewitt was also a boxer, Captain Dana "Dynamite" Holmes wants him on his regimental team. Prewitt expl ains that he stopped fighting after blinding a friend and refuses. Consequently, Holmes makes Prewitt's life miserable and ultimately orders First Sergeant Milton Warden (Lancaster) to prepare a court-martial. Warden suggests doubling Prewitt's company punishment as an alternative. Prewitt is hazed by the other NCOs and is supported only by his close friend, Private Angelo Maggio (Sinatra).
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 303: A sergeant named Galovitch, a member of Holmes' boxing team, picks a fight with Prewitt. The fight is reported to Holmes who observes without intervening. Holmes is about to punish Prewitt again, but when he is told that Galovitch started the fight, Holmes lets him off the hook. The regimental commander observes Holmes' conduct and, after an investigation, orders his resignation in lieu of a court martial. Holmes' repl acement, Captain Ross, reprimands the other NCOs, demotes Galovitch to Private, and affirms that there will be no more promotions through boxing.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 309: Early Sunday morning, the Japanese attack Pearl Harbor. Warden keeps his head in the chaos. That night, Prewitt attempts to rejoin his company (despite Lorene's pl eas for him to stay with her) but MPs shoot him dead when he refuses to halt. Warden identifies him as a good soldier, but dead.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 315: ploads/2012/11/from-here-to-eternity-beach-kiss-ocean-300x223.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 350: Nous le voyons tout à coup paraître sur la digue, entouré de son état-major et suivi de ses guides, il descend de cheval, tire son sabre, prend un drapeau et s'élance sur le pont au milieu d'une pl uie de feu. Les soldats le voient et aucun d'eux ne l’imite.»
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 355: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c3/Dagon1.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 398: He moved in 1941 from Chicago to New York to study philosophy at New York University, dropping out to write fiction after about a year. By the late 1940s, he was immersed in the philosophy of Wilhelm Reich, "the errant Freud discipl e who turned ideology into orgasm."
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 415: Musta näyttää että Philin tissikirja kertoo siitä mitä pl ussia ja miinuseja se koki kokeneensa Clairen naimisesta ja maailmanlaajuisesta celeb-statuxesta. Plussaa on että kaikki kumikaulat kazovat, miinusta ettei kukaan sen vakavasti ottama highbrou enää ota sitä vakavasti. Dekaani Kukko ei voi estää naurua ja sen vaimo antaa sille lahjaxi middlebrou Shakespeare älppärin. Kiukustunut Phil kuittaa kirjeellä jossa kiitoxet on kirjoitettu äxällä. Naura sinäkin, kehottaa kallonkutistaja, mutta Phil ei naura käskystä. Muut naurakoot sen tahtipuikon tahdissa. Selvä narsisti.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 428: Laurence Olivier oli vähintäänkin 2-neuvoinen. From the beginning of Olivier's life, there was confusion over his sexual identity. The most intimate friend of his youth was the actor Denys Blakelock, also the son of a clergyman, who was homosexual. The Queen's late aunt, Princess Marina, Duchess of Kent, who was involved with the bisexual and married Kaye for several years, told me quite emphatically that he and Olivier were "épris" ("in love"). And Coward, who was appalled to witness the two men openly exchanging French kisses in public, despised Kaye, whom he habitually referred to as "randy Dan Kaminski" (David Daniel Kaminski was Kaye's real name). One biography printed after his death alleged that Olivier “was deepl y involved in a homosexual affair with Danny Kaye.”
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 432: After Lord Olivier's death on July 11, 1989, aged 82, from neuromuscular disease and cancer, and his interment in Poet's Corner, Westminster Abbey, his official biographer, Terry Coleman, asked Mrs. Joan Plowright if he had had homosexual affairs. She repl ied robustly: "If he did, so what?"
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 452: That can thy light relume. When I have pl uck'd the rose,
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 488: The pl ay derives its pl ot from Giambattista Giraldi’s De gli Hecatommithi (1565), which Shakespeare appears to have known in the Italian original; it was available to him in French but had not been translated into English.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 491: The pl ay is set in motion when Othello, a heroic black general in the service of Venice, appoints Cassio and not Iago as his chief lieutenant. Jealous of Othello’s success and envious of Cassio, Iago pl ots Othello’s downfall by falsely impl icating Othello’s wife, Desdemona, and Cassio in a love affair. With the unwitting aid of Emilia, his wife, and the willing help of Roderigo, a fellow malcontent, Iago carries out his pl an.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 530: Kuin Luther istuin kakalla lukien Saramangon evankeliumia. Pari ajatuspökälettä juolahti siinä mieleen, samalla kun kakkapökäleet pl umpsahtivat sattumixi saatanan mykysopassa.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 534: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/cc/Portrait_Roi_de_france_Clovis.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 589: Till its pride is over-pl ain; josta turhamaisuus ei paista läpi,
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 604: Nefiili Leegion tapauxessa muutama sika menetettiin mutta 1 örkki pelastui, eli peli apinoille 2000-1. Pakanat sukelteli ärräpäitä päästellen järvestä hukkuneita sikoja. Briefer and her team believe that their AI method is about 92% accurate in discerning a pig's emotional state. And they pl an to build some kind of tool, maybe an app, to help farmers listen to the pigs.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 637: Which one is true? We simpl y do not know for sure. The facts about his death have not been historically proven, beyond a reasonable doubt. In fact, there is no historical consensus on the person of Matthew. There are several conflicting accounts, and the Greek text does not state anywhere he was an eyewitness (and therefore a discipl e). Maybe he was a fake. The problem is the gospel of Matthew is anonymous: the author is not named within the oldest surviving text, and the superscription "according to Matthew" was added some time in the second century, although the gospel doesn't state it's an eyewitness account. The historically very likely incorrect tradition that the author was the discipl e Matthew begins with the early Christian bishop Papias of Hierapolis.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 645: Besançonin Ferreol, mestataan, Sigmaringenin Fidelis, piikkinuijalla, Agenin Fides, kurkku viilletään, Filomena, nuolilla ja ankkurilla, Pampl onan Firminus, mestataan, Flavia Domitilla, samoin, Évoran Fortunato, ehkä samoin, Tarragonan Fructuosus, poltetaan, Ranskan Gaudentius, mestataan, Gelasius, samoin, rautakarstoilla kiduttamisen lisäksi, Burgundin Gengulphus, aisankannattaja, vaimonsa rakastajan surmaama, Budapestin Gerardus Sagredo, keihäällä, Kölnin Gereon, mestataan, Gervasius ja Protasius, kaksoset, samoin, Ghistellesin Godelewa, kuristetaan, Maria Goretti, samoin, Aostan Gratus, mestataan, Hadrianus, vasaroidaan kuoliaaksi alasimen päällä, Hermenegildus, surmataan kirveellä, Hieron, miekalla, Hippolytus, laahautuu kuoliaaksi hevosen perässä, Inácio de Azevedo, saa surmansa kalvinistien kädestä, nämä eivät ole katolilaisia, Napolin Januarius, mestataan vielä sen jälkeen kun hänet ensin on heitetty pedoille ja työnnetty uuniin, Jeanne d'Arc, poltetaan elävältä, João de Brito, kurkku viilletään, Prahan Johannes Nepomuklainen, hukutetaan, John Fisher, mestataan, Juan de Prado, päähän isketään tikari, Korsikan Julia, ensin leikataan rinnat ja sitten naulitaan ristiin, Nikomedeian Juliana, mestataan, Sevillan Justa ja Rufina, toinen teilataan, toinen kuristetaan, Antiokian Justina, poltetaan kiehuvalla piellä ja mestataan,
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 701: An aim of Christian apologetics must be to defend and articulate the white supremacy of the Christian religion as compared to Islam. The goal of this paper will be to highlight a historical issue surrounding the Quran’s source material for its account of Jesus Christ and some clay birds. In the best traditions of American free enterprise and Western market economy, I shall do my best to denigrate the musulmans and sell our alternative product in its pl ace.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 740: (Just look at the insolent manner those guys have stolen our holy Christian middle English "holier-than-thou" lingo! Sheer pl agiarism!)
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 742: Many of the things Mohammed wrote down are found within the Judeo-Christian canon: Jesus taught the Scriptures, he healed lepers and men who were born blind, and he raised peopl e from the dead. But, the Gospels and nowhere else in Scripture presents Jesus ever molding clay into sparrows (or other birds, passerine or otherwise) and breathing life into them, causing them to fly away. Where is this material found? Discussing the origin of many pseudo-biblical themes, accounts, and motifs within the Quran, Yehuda D. Nevo (admittedly a Jew, but we got a common enemy here) noted that:
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 750: When the boy Jesus was five years old, he was pl aying at the ford of a rushing stream. And he gathered the disturbed water into pools and made them pure and excellent, commanding them by the character of his word alone and not by means of a deed. Then, taking soft clay from the mud, he formed twelve sparrows. It was the Sabbath when he did these things, and many children were with him. And a certain Jew, seeing the boy Jesus with the other children doing these things, went to his father Joseph and falsely accused the boy Jesus, saying that, on the Sabbath he made clay, which is not lawful, and fashioned twelve sparrows. And Joseph came and rebuked him, saying, “Why are you doing these things on the Sabbath?” But Jesus, clapping his hands, commanded the birds with a shout in front of everyone and said, “Go, take flight, and remember me, living ones.” And the sparrows, taking flight, went away squawking. (Sparrows don't squawk, they tweet. Perhaps they were ducks?) When the Pharisee saw this he was amazed and reported it to all his friends. (Inf: 1:1-5 italics added for emphasis
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 759: Attributed to the apostle Thomas (not likely, him being a stickler for factuality), the story accounts Jesus’ doings from age five to his appearance within the templ e (Luke 2:41-49). In his book The Lost Bible: Forgotten Scriptures Revealed, J.R. Porter commented:
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 762: dangerous powers, rather like Harry Potter. His words can have harsh consequences when he is angered or insulted, as when he shrivels up one boy for a quite insignificant act and strikes another dead for merely bumping into him. It is hard not to feel distaste at such stories, which seem so far removed from the Jesus of the canonical gospels, and one can even detect a degree of unease on the part of the author as he narrates them: while attempting to absolve Jesus from the blame, he more than once records the great offense which Jesus’ behavior caused, as well as the efforts of his parents to restrain him, as when Joseph asks Jesus: “Why do you do such things that these peopl e must suffer and hate us and persecute us?” On another occasion Joseph tells Mary: “Do not let him go outside the door, for all those who provoke him die."
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 764: The Christ-child is presented as one that does not grow in wisdom and understanding but yields his sharp omnipotence at a whim on unsuspecting peopl e and his parents. Though widely influential in Christian imagination and art, the infancy gospels were never close to canonization. They were not discussed or considered because they were known to be fictitious fables. F.F. Bruce discussing the nature of the infancy gospels remarked that
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 787: The issues with this objection are triune: a) how the story is presented within the narrative, b) what the Quran says about itself, and c) what the objection impl ies about Allah.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 792: c) The objection might also impl y something about the character of Allah and his ability to use inaccuracies or falsities within his revealed truth. What makes matters worse for the objector is the pivotal role the Quran pl ays within Muslim thought concerning inspiration. Islamic scholar Stefan Wild asserts
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 797: nature. For it to contain any sort of error would impugn the nature of an errorless God (39:1-2; 55:1-2). A further question would be whether or not something that never happened in the passing of time can be viewed by definition “historical?”How about "epic?" This could be an exampl e of a pseudo-book. Responses and others similar to them make the objection impl ausible.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 32: CHINS UP play:none">Panettelua
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 87: pload/2016/09/rilke-1.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 99: Born in 1875 in Prague, Rilke was until he was six or seven got up in skirts by his mother, who named him René and tried to console herself for the death of an infant daughter. By the time Rilke was ten, his disappointed romantic of a mother had left his father, a kindly but ineffectual minor railway official, who had spent some years in the Austrian army unsuccessfully seeking commission as an officer. Rilke's parents decided to send the young boy to military school, a prospect that stirred the father's hopes of turning his son into a soldier. LOL. Though he later claimed to have loathed military school, the young bohemian warmly absorbed the values of discipl ine, valor, and self-sacrifice into his ideal of the defiant artist-hero. He skillfully foiled his father's martial expectations, and lack of funds freed the aspiring poet from his family's next pl ans for him: law school. In fact, though he attended several universities, soaking up lectures on diverse subjects throughout his life, he never graduated from any of them. About such a practical matter as a sheepskin, the finest German lyricist since Goethe wrote as an adolescent, "And even if I never reach my Arts degree / I'm still a scholar, as I wished to be."
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 101: W. H. Auden once remarked that would-be poets had better learn a manual trade. But Rilke was cast more in the haughty Yeatsian mold that Auden, not exactly a day laborer himself, haughtily disdained. And unlike Rilke's contemporary Franz Kafka, who performed his tasks as an insurance executive with initiative and even enthusiasm, Rilke was too frail psychologically to balance his art with the demands of full-time empl oyment. Even a desk job in the Austrian army during the First World War, when the forty-year-old literary celebrity was conscripted, proved too much for him. After three weeks of parade-ground training and living in barracks, which nearly killed him, Rilke was assigned to the propaganda section. There his literary powers deserted him, and his frustrated superiors transferred the stunned poet to the card-filing department, where he remained for six months, until his friends interceded and got him discharged. André Malraux he was not.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 105: Rilke lived on the brink of poverty for much of his life, dependent on the good graces of aristocratic and haute-bourgeois patrons in the twilight of the Hapsburg Empire. His shaky situation, much as he compl ained of it, suited his temperament as well as did the black clothes he liked to parade in during his dandyish younger days in Prague. Like the great German mystics, Rilke was a confirmed solitary. Thus he sought to form emotional bonds with peopl e more ardently than do those who take their desire to be with others for granted. Wandering from person to person and from pl ace to pl ace like a pilgrim, he found that patrons offered him, among more practical things, a potential shrine of emotional fulfillment.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 107: Rilke spent his life wandering. From an art colony in Germany he migrated to a position as Rodin's secretary in Paris; the sculptor eventually claimed that the poet was answering letters without his permission and summarily dismissed him, as much to Rilke's relief as to his chagrin. From Berlin he made two pilgrimages to Russia to meet Tolstoy, on one trip going nearly unacknowledged because of a titanic quarrel between the count and the countess. He traveled from Italy to Vienna to Spain to Tunisia to Cairo. His restless peregrinations had their origins in his epoch, and in a temperament forced painfully to choose perfection of the life or of the work. Rilke's academic sponsor and friend was Georg Simmel, the celebrated German sociologist and philosopher of modernity. In "The Adventurer," one of his most famous essays, Simmel argued that only the experience of art or adventure could invest time with the significance once lent it by religious ritual. The work of both art and adventure had a beginning and an end; they were each an "island in life" that briefly imparted a transcendent wholeness to experience. And of all possible modern adventures, Simmel concluded, the one that most compl etely combined the profoundest elements of life with a momentary apprehension of what lay beyond life was the love affair.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 109: Augustine journeyed (unhurriedly) from the fleshpots of Carthage, from being in love with love, to the love of God. Rilke, along with other adventurers on the threshold of the twentieth century, traveled from God to a conviction that the only transcendent principl e left was the love, erotic and spiritual, between men and women too. Rilke's experience as a young boy with a feminine persona seems in this sense to have been a great boon.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 115: Rilke seems to have passed with relief from the all-consuming rites of romance to the half communion, half self-examination of writing letters, an activity that also served as a calm precursor of his art. Not surprisingly, he was one of the greatest--and most self-conscious--letter writers who ever lived. He composed missives with a devotional purposiveness. He once wrote a poem about the Annunciation in which the angel forgets what he has come to announce because he is overwhelmed by Mary's beauty. The impl ication seems to be that communicating through the mail would have been a more fruitful procedure.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 117: Rilke loved absolutely, not strenuously or patiently, and therefore his love always froze up into a mirror of itself. His condition might have been tormented and tormenting--it might appear wearily obnoxious. But for Rilke the poet, modern men and women as lovers--their exalted expectations and their comi-tragic desperation--came to symbolize compl ex human fate in a world where vertiginous possibilities have repl aced God and nature. In Rilke's Elegies especially, lovers encounter animals, trees, flowers, works of art, puppets, and angels--all images, for Rilke, of the absolute fulfillment of desire, alongside which the poet pl aced the tender vaudeville of imperfect human wanting. Rilke the man might have presented a painful obstruction to himself. But true ardor often springs from an essential deprivation.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 119: Ralph Freedman gives a remarkably purposeful account of Rilke's deprivation. But he describes none of Rilke's ardor--or his honest avowals, or all the discipl ine and strength and health he needed to draw his life's work out of depressions, blocks, and fears, out of his contemporary-sounding struggle between a Faustian ego and an endangered self. In this biography we don't get Rilke's poetic transformations. We get only the modern condition--his and his society's--that he poetically transformed and that we've inherited.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 121: Freedman's Rilke, oddly enough, dwells on the dark underside of contemporary American life. Behind the mingled, multicolored yarn of his passions, obsessions, powerful yearnings, and self-interest--all wisely balanced in Donald Prater's majestic and definitive 1986 biography--Freedman sees only self-interest. Rilke is "hucksterish." His carefully cultivated literary success Freedman characterizes as a "relentless career." He refers to Rilke's "careerist standards." The pl aces Rilke settles in for a time are not homes but Rilke's "bases."
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 123: At moments Rilke's awareness of his self-interest amid modern anxieties appears uncannily precocious: "The pressures even in the preschooler's life were often suffocating. He longed for change." How does Freedman know that? I presume he got it from one of the mature Rilke's self-dramatizing letters, letters that Freedman paraphrases tendentiously throughout the book. That approach has the effect of turning Rilke's harsh and vain self-expl orations into evidence of the "traumas" that Rilke spent a life riddled with "failure" denying. Indeed, Freedman writes enigmatically about "Rilke's pattern of living through failure as part of a process that turns denial into poetic art." I'm not sure what that means, but it sounds like success to me.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 139: This is formidable revisionism. The cumulative effect of such a distortion of truth to an admirable, if sadly mispl aced, idea of redemption and redress is to make Freedman's biography read like a forced confession. But the beating heart of Freedman's interminable deconstruction is Rilke the sexist. Rilke's extraordinary sensitivity to women, his admiration and need for strong and intelligent women, women's love for Rilke--these facts Freedman brusquely mentions only to knock down. What he wants is to prove that Rilke was a spirited accompl ice in European society's subjugation of women. He writes,
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 141: The women Rainer chose . . . were themselves practicing artists whose work he respected, from Clara to Loulou and now to Baladine-Merline. But they were given no choice to remove themselves for the sake of their art. . . . Rilke's love imposed a nonreciprocal discipl ine: in the end, it worked only for him and his poetry.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 149: Rilke's most benevolent patron, Princess Marie von Thurn und Taxis, was wise enough both to nurture Rilke's gift and to keep her distance from her compl icated protégé. An unblinking observer of Rilke's life, she was able to see his liaisons for what they were. And she knew how Rilke's acute sensitivity to his own condition, combined with his talent for self-pity, often landed him in the arms of the wrong peopl e: "You must always be seeking out such weeping willows, who are by no means so weepy in reality, believe me--you find your own reflection in those eyes." But Freedman, doggedly indifferent to the available evidence, makes Rilke's lovers and women friends out to be helpl ess victims of a smooth seduction machine.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 151: As for the centerpiece of Freedman's argument for Rilke's sexism--he "abandoned" Clara and their daughter, Ruth--here he portrays Clara, too, as if she were Tess of the D'Urbervilles. On the contrary. Clara enthusiastically seconded Rilke's definition of two artists wedded as each, in Rilke's cautiously ambiguous phrase, "the guardian of the other's solitude." After Rilke left for Paris, she pl aced Ruth with her wealthy and supportive parents and went on a pilgrimage to Egypt, among other pl aces. Like Rilke, the adventurous Clara had a fascinating life--I don't know why Freedman didn't write her biography. Women artists suffered in Rilke's society, but not because of Rilke.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 164: a smile run through the pl acid hips and thighs
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 172: burst like a star: for here there is no pl ace
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 178: In 2002 Siegel received the National Magazine Award in the category "Reviews and Criticism". Jeff Bercovici, (alias sprezzatura), writing in Media Life Magazine, quoted the award citation, which called the essays "models of original thinking and passionate writing... Siegel's tough-minded yet generous criticism is prose of uncommon power—work that dazzles readers by drawing them into the pl ay of ideas and the enjoyment of lively, committed debate".
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 184: In June 2015, Siegel wrote an op-ed piece for The New York Times entitled "Why I Defaulted on My Student Loans", in which he defended defaulting on the loans he received for living expenses while on full scholarship and working his way through college and graduate school at Columbia University, writing that “the millions of young peopl e today, who collectively owe over $1 trillion in loans, may want to consider my exampl e.”
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 186: Economist Susan Dynarski wrote that Siegel is not typical of student loan defaulters both in that the typical student-loan recipient attends a public university and in that only two percent of those borrowing to fund a graduate degree default on their loans. Conservative political commentator Kevin D. Williamson, writing in National Review, called it "theft," saying that "an Ivy League degree or three is every much an item of conspicuous consumption and a status symbol as a Lamborghini." Senior Business and Economics Correspondent for Slate Jordan Weissman called it "deepl y irresponsible" to suggest that students should consider defaulting on their loans and said that The New York Times should apologize for the piece. Siegel's original article was also criticized in Business Insider and MarketWatch.Siegel appeared to further discuss the article on Yahoo! Finance.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 201: Three years later in September of 1905, Rilke took a job as Rodin’s assistant and lived with him full-time on his country estate. For the first time, Rodin’s correspondence was prompt and his files organized. Rilke relished more long talks with Rodin and the book is filled with exampl es of how Rodin stimulated the poet during this period of empl oyment and intense "dialogue."
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 203: One of the more amusing exampl es is how Rodin said good night to Rilke. Rather than “bonne nuit,” Rodin would say, “bon courage,” roughly translated to “show courage” or “have good courage,” Or "chins up", but this idiomatic expression is hard to translate. While an unusual way to say good night, Rodin was trying to telegraph to Rilke that he would need to be courageous as he prepared for the night's inevitable challenges.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 209: The book depicts both men’s messy marriages and compl ex relationships with men and women. Their success, like most men of all times, was on the backs of women whose expl oitation cultural norms sanctioned.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 219: We will never know whether Rilke had Rodin in mind when he wrote. But it’s undeniable a lot went well when he met Rodin. And while an artist taking on a protégé is not unique, that Rodin and Rilke bonded despite differing languages, ages, and artistic discipl ines is noteworthy. As Rilke wrote to Kappus, “in the deepest and most important pl aces, we are unspeakably alone; and many things must happen, many things must go right, a whole dark constellation of events must be fulfilled, for one human being to successfully enter another. ”
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 275: Portugal's 25 April 1976 constitution reflected the country's 1974–76 move from authoritarian rule to provisional military government to a representative democracy with some initial Communist and left-wing influence. The military coup in 1974, which became known as the Carnation Revolution, was a result of multipl e internal and external factors like the colonial wars that ended in defeats, removing the dictator, Marcelo Caetano, from power. The prospect of a communist takeover in Portugal generated considerable concern among the country's NATO allies. The revolution also led to the country abruptly abandoning its colonies overseas and to the return of an estimated 600,000 Portuguese citizens from abroad. The 1976 constitution, which defined Portugal as a "Republic... engaged in the formation of a classless society," was revised in 1982, 1989, 1992, 1997, 2001, and 2004.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 283: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/2c/Guido_Reni_-_Saint_Joseph_and_the_Christ_Child_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 288: In the 13th century, the Dominican Doctor of the Church Thomas Aquinas discussed the necessity of the presence of Joseph in the pl an of the Incarnation for if Mary had not been married, her fellow Jews would have stoned her to death and that a young Jesus needed the care and protection of a human father figure. The Josephology of Aquinas often proceeded with the juxtaposition of Joseph and Mary.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 292: The growth of the following of Joseph is manifested with the earliest church dedicated to him in Rome, San Giuseppe dei Falegnami (St. Joseph of the Carpenters), constructed in 1540 in the Forum Romanum, above the prison that by tradition had held the Apostles Peter and Paul. The spread of his following is then shown by the publication of the first Litany of St. Joseph in Rome in 1597 and the introduction of the Cord of St. Joseph in Antwerp in 1657. These were then followed by the Chapl et of St. Joseph in 1850, and the Scapular of St. Joseph of the Capuchins which was approved in 1880. The formal veneration of the Holy Family began in the 17th century by Mgr François de Laval.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 296: In 1870, Pope Pius IX proclaimed Saint Joseph "Patron of the Universal Church". Joseph is also the unofficial patron of fighting communism. In 1889, Pope Leo XIII issued the encyclical Quamquam pl uries in which he urged Catholics to pray to Joseph as patron of the church. This was in view of challenges facing the church, such as the growing depravity of morals in the young generation. He prescribed that every October, a prayer to Saint Joseph be added to the Rosary, with attached indulgences.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 300: During the centenary of Quamquam pl uries in 1989, Pope John Paul II delivered the Apostolic exhortation Redemptoris custos ("Guardian of the Redeemer"). This exhortation is part of the "redemption documents" issued by the pope, and refers to the Marian encyclical Redemptoris Mater. It discusses the importance of Saint Joseph in the Holy Family, and presents the pope's view of Saint Joseph's role in the pl an of redemption. John Paul II positions Saint Joseph as breaking the old vice of paternal familial domination, and suggests him as the model of a loving father.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 328: Sofi-Elina Oksanen syntyi seitsemäntenä päivänä tammikuuta vuonna 1977 virolaisen dipl omi-insinööri äidin ja suomalaisen sähkömies isän perheeseen Jyväskylässä. Hän jäi perheen ainoaksi lapseksi, mutta ei antanut sen koskaan haitata itseään – päinvastoin. Yksin hän sai vanhemmiltaan enemmän aikaa ja huomiota eikä hänen koskaan tarvinnut jakaa mitään kenenkään kanssa. Täysin erilainen elämänkatsomus vanhempiensa kanssa ajoi hänet usein heidän kanssaan riitoihin, mutta vielä monta vuotta myöhemminkin on tytär edelleen hyvissä väleissä äitinsä ja hiljaisen isänsä kanssa.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 375: Now I think we shall gain a great deal by following the suggestion of a writer who, from personal motives, vainly asserts that he has nothing to do with the rigours of pure science. I am speaking of Georg Groddeck, who is never tired of insisting that what we call our ego behaves essentially passively in life, and that, as he expresses it, we are "lived" by unknown and uncontrollable forces. We have all had impressions of the same kind, even though they may not have overwhelmed us to the exclusion of all others, and we need feel no hesitation in finding a pl ace for Groddeck's discovery in the structure of science. I propose to take it into account by calling the entity which starts out from the system Pcpt. and begins by being Pcs. the "ego", and by following Groddeck in calling the other part of the mind, into which this entity extends and which behaves as though it were Ucs., the "id". (Freud 1927/1961, 13).
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 379: Groddeck believed that all feelings are ambivalent, affection is always mixed with animosity. Groddeck was deepl y interested in Christian mysticism. He regarded psychoanalysis as identical with Jesus' teachings. Groddeck analyzed Christian symbols with psychoanalytic methods. If you came for massage, he gave you therapy. If you came for therapy, he gave you massage.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 453: Less than three months after their engagement, Bonhoeffer was arrested for his activities in resisting the Nazi government. He and Maria corresponded during his imprisonment in Tegel prison and she was permitted to visit him occasionally but, after he was impl icated in the pl ot to assassinate Hitler on the 20th of July 1944, he was transferred to a Gestapo high security prison and was permitted no further contact with her or his family.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 549: Pelko ja toivo on heikompia, duaalisia modaliteetteja uskolle, joissa on mukana myös preferenssit. Pelkään että p tarkoittaa että uskoni kannalta on mahdollista mutta ikävää että p. Vastaavasti toivo, paizi että haluaisin sitä. Will to believe tarkoittaa: tahdon että p impl ikoi uskon että p, eli uskon mitä toivon, vaikka ehkä pelkäänkin päinvastaista. Se on kyllä peleissä yleensä häviävä strategia, pitäis käyttää minimaxia. Keppi ja porkkana, molempia on aasin hyvä saada, kuten äskeinen psalmi 119 terotti.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 568: Ott was supposed to begin a two-year research position at the University of Turku's Tuorla Observatory on March 1. But on Feb. 1, scientists and professors from Finnish astronomy departments began circulating an open letter strongly condemning harassment. It has so far been signed by more than 240 peopl e.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 575: "Hopefully peopl e have learned something from this depl orable incident," he said. "If you get thrown out from one pl ace, don't give up, there is a chance of getting a 25 year sinecure from another."
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 584: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/53/Jewish_boy_reads_Bar_Mitzvah.JPG/220px-Jewish_boy_reads_Bar_Mitzvah.JPG" />
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 641: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 642: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 31: MIN GALNA HAGE play:none">Smuts
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 46: Peopl e with “dark personality traits”, such as psychopathy or narcissism, are more likely to be callous, disagreeable and antagonistic in their nature. Such traits exist on a continuum – we all have more or less of them, and this does not necessarily equate to being clinically diagnosed with a personality disorder.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 48: Traditionally, peopl e who are high in dark traits are considered to have empathy deficits, potentially making them more dangerous and aggressive than the rest of us. But we recently discovered something that challenges this idea. Our study, published in Personality and Individual Differences, identified a group of individuals with dark traits who report above-average empathic capacities – we call them “dark empanzees”.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 54: Psychopathy is characterised by a superficial charm and callousness. Peopl e high in such traits often show an erratic lifestyle and antisocial behaviour. Machiavellianism derives from the writings of Niccolò Machiavelli, a Renaissance author, historian and philosopher. He described power games involving deception, treachery and crime. Thus, machiavellianism refers to an expl oitative, cynical and manipulative nature. Narcissism is characterised by an exaggerated sense of entitlement, superiority and grandiose thinking, while sadism denotes a drive to inflict and enjoy pain in others.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 58: Empathy can refer to the capacity to share feelings, namely “affective empathy” (if you are sad, I also feel sad). But it can also be the ability to understand other peopl e’s minds, dubbed “cognitive empathy” (I know what you think and why you are feeling sad).
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 60: For exampl e, the lack of (specifically affective) empathy is a well documented hallmark in clinical psychopathy used to expl ain their often persistent, instrumental violent behaviour. Our own work supports the notion that one of the reasons peopl e with dark traits hurt other peopl e or have difficulties in relationships is an underpinning lack of empathy.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 62: Paradoxically, however, some researchers have previously reported average or even higher levels of some aspects of empathy in some peopl e with dark traits.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 65: We asked almost 1,000 peopl e to compl ete assessments, based on questionnaires, on the dark triad and empathy. We then used a method called latent profile analysis that allows you to establish clusters of peopl e with different profiles of certain trait combinations.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 66: As expected, we found a traditional dark triad group with low scores in empathy (about 13% of the sampl e). We also found a group with lower to average levels across all traits (about 34% were “typicals”) and a group with low dark traits and high levels of empathy (about 33% were “empaths”). However, the fourth group of peopl e, the “dark empaths”, was evident. They had higher scores on both dark traits and empathy (about 20% of our sampl e). Interestingly, this latter group scored higher on both cognitive and affective empathy than the “dark triad” and “typical” groups.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 68: We then characterised these groups based on measures of aggression, general personality, psychological vulnerability and wellbeing. The dark empanzees were not as aggressive as the traditional dark triad group – suggesting the latter are likely more dangerous. Nevertheless, the dark empanzees were more aggressive than typicals and empanzees, at least on a measure of indirect aggression - that is, hurting or manipulating peopl e through social exclusion, malicious humour and guilt-induction. Thus, although the presence of empathy was limiting their level of aggression, it was not eliminating it compl etely.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 70: In line with this notion, empanzees were the most “agreeable” (a personality trait showing how nice or friendly you are), followed by typicals, then dark empanzees, and last dark triads. Interestingly, dark empanzees were more extroverted than the rest, a trait reflecting the tendency to be sociable, lively and active. Thus, the presence of empathy appears to encourage an enjoyment of being or interacting with peopl e. But it may potentially also be motivated by a desire to dominate them.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 76: It is worth noting, however, that those clinically diagnosed with an antisocial personality disorder (often showing excessive levels of dark traits), most certainly lack empathy and are dangerous predators – and many of them are in prison. Our research is looking at peopl e in the general population who have elevated levels of dark personality traits, rather than personality disorders.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 78: We are continuing our quest to find out more about the characteristics of the dark empanzees in relation to other psychological outcomes. For exampl e, we are interested in their risk taking, impulsivity or physically aggressive behaviour. We also want to understand how they process emotions or facial expressions, or how they perceive and react to threats.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 80: We are currently repl icating and extending some of our findings using the dark tetrad instead. Our results are yet to be published, but indicate there are two further profiles in addition to the four groups we’ve already identified. One is an “emotionally internalised group”, with high levels of affective empathy and average cognitive empathy, without elevated dark traits. The other shows a pattern similar to autistic traits – particularly, low cognitive empathy and average affective empathy in the absence of elevated dark traits.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 91: The pain that is the product of the body itself; its malfunction is part of the self: somewhere, a mystery medical science cannot expl ain, The self is responsible.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 112: Paska poliisisarja Lewis (alla) tekee mieluusti lattapäisiä alluusioita Shakespeareen kert ollaan Oxfordissa. Läxynsä lukenut britti voi ennakoida kuka oli murhaaja. Morsetusta, ristisanan ratkontaa. Tuli mieleen et onxtää Gordimerin Duncan kans joku vinkki Macbethiin. Luin kai sen samalla kuin muutkin Billin kootut, mutten yhtään muista pl ottia. Palaan astialle ehkä myöhemmin. Tässä dekkarissa whodunit is clear but who's to blame is still open for endless heartsearching and argument. Onko Dunkin's donut todellinen syyllinen? The coon is trying to lay the blame at the donut's door. Like Bill blamed Lady Macbeth. If Ms. A gets Mr. B to commit murder both may get off easier. One did not do it and the other did not pl an it.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 120: Broadly speaking, apartheid was delineated into petty apartheid, which entailed the segregation of public facilities and social events, and grand apartheid, which dictated housing and empl oyment opportunities by race. Like petty theft and grand theft.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 128: Before South Africa became a republic in 1961, politics among white South Africans was typified by the division between the mainly Afrikaner pro-republic conservative and the largely English anti-republican liberal sentiments, with the legacy of the Boer War still a factor for some peopl e. Once South Africa became a republic, Prime Minister Hendrik Verwoerd called for improved relations and greater accord between peopl e of British descent and the Afrikaners. He claimed that the only difference was between those in favour of apartheid and those against it. The ethnic division would no longer be between Afrikaans and English speakers, but between blacks and whites.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 168: “I regret what I did. I was wrong. That is why I am standing before court, pl eading for forgiveness. I am showing my remorse by pl eading guilty to the murder.”
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 176: He walked home, fetched his firearm and fired three shots at his sleeping girlfriend. He then tried to commit suicide and demonstrated to the court how he held a gun against his right templ e before pulling the trigger.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 182: "It is understandable and human that one would be angry, disappointed and hurt if you found out your partner of 12 years had been unfaithful. There was also a measure of provocation from the deceased when she threw a pl ate at the accused."
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 184: According to the post-mortem the cause of death was strangulation and she had multipl e fractured ribs, while her liver was grey.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 186: Vorster, in his pl ea statement, admitted to killing Vos.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 190: She then threw a pl ate of food at him.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 200: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/09/Inf._06_Joseph_Anton_Koch%2C_Paolo_e_Francesca_sorpresi_da_Gianciotto%2C_1805-10c..jpg" />
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 206: Era marito di prime nozze di Francesca da Polenta, immortalata nei versi di Dante (Inferno, Canto V). Si racconta che la sua morte sarebbe avvenuta nel castello di Scorticata (odierna Torriana) per mano del nipote Uberto, figlio del fratello Paolo, che egli aveva ucciso, insieme alla propria consorte Francesca, che era divenuta l'amante del cognato. Tuttavia nel 1304 Gianciotto era stato nuovamente designato podestà di Pesaro, ragion per cui si ritiene che morì in questa città. Gianciotto sposò in seconde nozze Zambrasina dei Zambrasi di Faenza, dalla quale ebbe cinque figli. Eli ihan kivasti meni sitten Zoppolla vaikka klenkaten. Mutta entäs loppupeleissä? Kostonhimoinen Francesca sanoo siipasta et Kainin orsilla tavataan: « Caïne attend celui qui nous meurtrit ». Dante situe la Caïne dans la première zone du lac du Cocyte, au pl us profond du neuvième cercle de l'Enfer. Là sont punis, pris dans la glace jusqu'au cou, les traîtres à leurs proches. Il donne à ce lieu le nom de Caïn qui tua son frère Abel après l'avoir trahi.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 208: The "crime of passion" defense challenges the mens rea element by suggesting that there was no malice aforethought, and instead the crime was committed in the "heat of passion". In some jurisdictions, a successful "crime of passion" defense may result in a conviction for manslaughter or second degree murder instead of first degree murder, because a defendant cannot ordinarily be convicted of first degree murder unless the crime was premeditated. A classic exampl e of a crime of passion involves a spouse who, upon finding his or her partner in bed with another, kills the romantic interloper.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 211: This defense was first used by U.S. Congressman Daniel Sickles of New York in 1859; after he had killed his wife's lover, Philip Barton Key II. It was used as a defense in murder cases during the 1940s and 1950s. Historically, such defenses were used as compl ete defenses for various violent crimes, but gradually they became used primarily as a partial defense to a charge of murder; if the court accepts temporary insanity, a murder charge may be reduced to manslaughter.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 215: Crimes of passion are often committed against women due to beliefs about female sexuality and are often present in societies dominated by strong double standards related to male and female sexual behaviors, particularly related to premarital sex and adultery. Indeed, with regard to adultery, many societies, such as Latin American countries, have been dominated by very strong double standards regarding male and female adultery, with the latter being seen as a much more serious violation. Such ideas were also supported by laws in the West; for exampl e, in the UK, before 1923, a man could divorce solely on the wife's adultery, but a woman had to prove additional fault (eg. adultery and cruelty). Similarly, passion defenses to domestic murders were often available to men who killed unfaithful wives, but not to women who killed unfaithful husbands (France's crime of passion law, that was in force until 1975, is an exampl e).
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 217: In traditional societies, women could not compl ain about mistresses, concubines, and in many cultures even other wives (such as polygyny); whereas male sexual jealousy was recognized as the highest emotion that could justify even murder. The recognized license of the Ancient Greek husband may be seen in the following passage of the pseudo-Demosthenic Oration Against Neaera: "We keep mistresses for our pl easures, concubines for constant attendance, and wives to bear us legitimate children and to be our faithful housekeepers. Yet, because of the wrong done to the husband only, the Athenian lawgiver Solon allowed any man to kill an adulterer whom he had taken in the act.''
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 224: Although condemned by international conventions and human rights organizations, honor killings are often justified and encouraged by various communities. In cases where the victim is an outsider, not murdering this individual would, in some regions, cause family members to be accused of cowardice, a moral defect, and subsequently be morally stigmatized in their community. In cases when the victim is a family member, the murdering evolves from the perpetrators' perception that the victim has brought shame or dishonor upon the entire family, which could lead to social ostracization, by violating the moral norms of a community. Typical reasons include being in a relationship or having associations with social groups outside the family that may lead to social exclusion of a family (stigma-by-association). Exampl es are having premarital, extramarital or postmarital sex (in case of divorce or widowship), refusing to enter into an arranged marriage, seeking a divorce or separation, engaging in interfaith relations or relations with persons from a different caste, being the victim of a sexual crime, dressing in clothing, jewelry and accessories which are associated with sexual deviance, engaging in a relationship in spite of moral marriage impediments or bans, and homosexuality.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 226: Though both men and women commit and are victims of honor killings, in many communities conformity to moral standards impl ies different behavior for men and women, including stricter standards for chastity for women. In many families, the honor motive is used by men as a pretext to restrict the rights of women.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 232: The origin of honor killings and the control of women is evidenced throughout history in the cultures and traditions of many regions. The Roman law of pater familias gave compl ete control to the men of the family over both their children and wives. Under these laws, the lives of children and wives were at the discretion of the men in their families. Ancient Roman Law also justified honor killings by stating that women who were found guilty of adultery could be killed by their husbands. During the Qing dynasty in China, fathers and husbands had the right to kill daughters who were deemed to have dishonored the family.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 242: Philip Seib is a Professor of Journalism and Public Dipl omacy and Professor of International Relations. Seib's research interests include the effects of news coverage on foreign policy, particularly conflict and terrorism issues. Prior to joining the USC faculty in 2007, Seib was a professor at Marquette University and before that at Southern Methodist University. Ensin mefodisti, sitten jesuiitta. Hmm.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 247: In an understandable effort to free Mr. Seib, the reporter's family, according to a UPI report in The Post Feb. 4, announced: "We want to stress his Catholic background, his German Volga background, his ethnic background." Further, "His upbringing did not have anything to do with the type of person who would spy for anybody." The Iranians chimed in to the effect that "mistakes and misunderstandings" pl ayed a major role in Mr. Seib's detention.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 248: There is a not-so-subtle message in the statements disseminated regarding Mr. Seib. Why not simpl y announce that, although he appears to have a "Jewish name" and to "look Jewish," he actually is a Catholic and a "German Volga" one at that.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 312: Carlson's paternal grandparents were Richard Gere and Pamela Anderson, teenagers who pl aced "Dick" at The Home of The Worriers orphanage where he was wet nursed first by Carl Bellman's tjänare Mollberg, then a maiden, near Boston, and finally by a tannery worker with Swedish accent named Florence Nightingale, and as a result adopted at the age of two-years-old the reactionary views of upper-middle-class Finland immigrants, the Carlsons, and the oldest tanner in America and his wife.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 323: After college, Carlson tried to join the Central Intelligence Agency, but his appl ication was denied, after which he decided to pursue a career in linguistics with the encouragement of his father, who advised him that "they'll take anybody".
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 328: "Moonbat" is a pejorative political epithet used in United States politics, referring to liberals, progressives, or leftists (especially the far-left). Bat-like peopl e on the Moon were part of the 1835 Great Moon hoax.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 340: Following the 2020 election, Carlson reportedly told peopl e he had voted for independent candidate Kanye West, because he was in awe of Kardashian's mammoth buttocks.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 347: Carlson is skeptical of foreign intervention, like Iraqi war and Ukrainan demilitarization. Carlson pl ayed an influential role in dissuading Trump from launching military strikes against Iran in response to the shooting down of an American drone in June 2019.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 350: Carlson has stated he does not consider Russia a serious threat to the United States. Carlson asserted in December 2019 that "Putin, for all his faults, does not hate America as much as many of these peopl e do", referring to liberals.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 353: In reality, the Ukrainian Ministry of Health and the U.S. Department of Defense signed an agreement in 2005 to prevent the spread of technologies and pathogens that might be used in the development of biological weapons. New laboratories were established to secure and dismantle the remnants of the Soviet biological weapons program, and since then have been used to monitor and prevent new epidemics, following the exampl e set by Wuhan labs and by Zignal Labs, a SaaS-based media intelligence software service company that serves marketing and public relations departments. It was founded in 2011 and is headquartered in San Francisco, and specialises in cyber wingnut warfare.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 368: Carlson was one of the network’s biggest stars, and gained a large following while spouting xenophobic and racist rhetoric on his show, Tucker Carlson Tonight. He left Fox News without expl anation on Monday. News outlets have reported that Carlson was fired on the personal order of Fox owner Rupert Murdoch for, among other things, using vulgar language to describe a female executive. Another victim of the freedom of expression!
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 370: The free press is under attack from multipl e forces. Media outlets are closing their doors, victims to a broken business model. In much of the world, journalism is morphing into propaganda, as governments dictate what can and can’t be printed. In the last year alone, hundreds of reporters have been killed, imprisoned or just given the sack for doing their jobs. The UN reports that 85% of the world’s population experienced a decline in press freedom in their country in recent years.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 375: On her first day working for Mr. Carlson, Ms. Grossberg said she discovered the office was decorated with large pictures of House Speaker Nancy Pelosi wearing a pl unging swimsuit. She said she was once called into the top producer’s office to be asked whether Ms. Bartiromo was having a sexual relationship with the House Republican leader, Kevin McCarthy.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 406: The House Gun (1998) was Gordimer's second post-apartheid novel. It follows the story of a coupl e, Claudia and Harald Lingard, dealing with their son Duncan's murder of one of his housemates. The novel treats the rising crime rate in South Africa and the guns that virtually all households have, as well as the legacy of South African apartheid and the coupl e's concerns about their son's lawyer, who is black and pompous and has an irritating mannerism of saying eh-ahe or ah-heh, with a hat on the e.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 410: Archbishop Desmond Tutu told me not to come, but I felt like coming. The way peopl e are treated in the occupied territories is exactly the way the blacks were treated in South Africa. The one-state solution is not on the negotiating table. A two-state solution, hammered out with great difficulty and consternation, is the only answer.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 417: play.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 422: But I (i.e. Mervin Aubespin) did not agree and stood up and said that the newspapers I was familiar did no such thing. That freedom of the press was a reality in the United States and if you didn't like what was printed there were ways to voice your opinion without penalty. I also warned about the unfairness of painting whole groups of peopl e with one brush.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 426: I could best describe her as a tiny person with a big heart. Myself I am just the opposite. She was born in South Africa to activist Jewish parents who were concerned about the poverty and discrimination faced by black peopl e in South Africa. Oops, her mother was a goy, but aanyway. I am purdy high yaller myself.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 436: Many readers prefer the more discipl ined, elegant craft of Gordimer’s short stories to the more epic, often convoluted style of her novels. I can relate to that.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 464: If immigrants still feel that they dislike everything this country and its peopl e stand for, there is a big wide world out there with pl enty of pl aces to choose to live in, but I doubt they would find anywhere better than here.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 466: London mayoral hopeful Laurence Fox used the launch of his manifesto to defend his right to call peopl e “paedophiles” on Twitter, citing free speech and claiming it is just a “meaningless and baseless” insult.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 506: helvetissä, pl us blasphemy ja
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 557: Nadine's problem is that she states pl atitudes in artistic terms. She even goes to say they are the most reliable truths of all. Fair enough, but they are no less cliches even so. Nadine saarnaa kuin leipääntynyt pastori: nain on meidankin elamassamme.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 576: ploads/sites/166/2020/03/15-1-988x509.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 583: Även Harry Martinson debuterade som poet men det är förmodligen hans prosa som är mest känd. Som prosaförfattare debuterade han med reseskildringen “Resor utan mål” som följdes upp med reseskildringen “Kap Farväl!”. Mest känd är han nog dock för sin uppväxtskildring “Nässlorna blomma”, som handlar om en föräldralös pojkes uppväxt i Fattigsverige. En av hans mer otippade framgångar var rymdeposet “Aniara” som handlar om ett rymdskepp som transporterar flyktingar från jorden till andra pl aneter på grund av miljöförstöring och kärnvapenkrig.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 591: Ladies and gentlemen, we have a tie! That’s probably not how they announced it back in October of 1974. A tie is not even the proper term for the rare occasions when the Nobel Prize in Literature’s gone to two peopl e at once. Sharing the honor is the phrase that seems to crop up, and these shared honors look like political moves—when the prize is going to a country that the Nobel committee might not get back to in a while. (The novelist António Lobo Antunes, for exampl e, was reportedly heartbroken when the Nobel went to José Saramago, because he knew they weren’t going to give it to Portugal again in his lifetime.) Still, there’s something about a shared prize that feels slighting, the A-minus of literary glory. I picture scenes like this:
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 598: The Swedes feel differently, though. The presentation speech lays out a “cut-out silhouette of two remarkable literary profiles,” drawing parallels between two writers whose work is not very similar, but whose lives curiously are. Both Eyvind Johnson and Harry Martinson come from hardscrabble backgrounds and emerged as unlikely, startling literary figures. “They are representative,” the speech tells us, “of the many proletarian writers or working-class poets who, on a wide front, broke into our literature, not to ravage and pl under, but to enrich it with their fortunes. Their arrival meant an influx of experience and creative energy, the value of which can hardly be exaggerated.”
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 600: Well, first of all, everything can be exaggerated, so calm down a little, Karl Ragnar Gierow. But also there’s a tone here that doesn’t sit well with me. Certainly the literary world has a tendency to calcify—the peopl e who have enough time to write books tend to be from the upper classes, so literature’s concerns and perspectives invariably get narrow without new blood. But those sidebar reassurances that working-class poets aren’t here to ravage and pl under seem nervous and uptight, and not really reassuring to boot. It seems to me that we want a little ravagement and pl under in our literary traditions. Why else would we welcome a stirring new voice, if it didn’t stir us up a little? And if it doesn’t stir us up, is it really a new voice, even if it comes from a pl ace most of us haven’t visited? “To determine an author and his work against the background of his social origin and political environment is, at present, good form,” the speech continues, and that’s OK as far as it goes. But if you’re going to decide that two authors are tied for literary merit, surely we can find some criterion besides their socioeconomic origin stories.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 627: The Days of His Grace: Life was hard under the reign of Charlemagne. One must retain one’s personal integrity during hard times. As far as a theme that surprises the reader and serves as a pl atform for further contempl ation, I give this
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 635: The Days of His Grace: Soap opera of a pl ot, enlivened by some fiery dialogue, but slowed by too much landscape description. Five.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 640: SIXTH CATEGORY: Level of reader satisfaction upon compl etion of work
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 659: And there you have it. It’s a crude way of evaluating literature, of course, but it doesn’t seem much cruder than the methodology used by the peopl e who chose these two authors in the first pl ace. And which author is better, you ask? Well, let’s see, seven pl us five, another seven, carry the one—hey! Ladies and gentlemen, we have a tie!
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 663: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/c/cb/A_Series_Of_Unfortunate_Events_poster.jpg/250px-A_Series_Of_Unfortunate_Events_poster.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 703: From the name "count Olaf" I can guess that Fatso does not fancy Swedes. He may be worried that he'll have to spl it his Nobel with another heavyweight like Fats Domino or Canned Heat . Se joka nauraa koviten nauraa parhaiten.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 707: Capital punishment in South Africa was abolished on 6 June 1995 by the ruling of the Constitutional Court in the case of S v Makwanyane, following a five-year and four-month moratorium since February 1990. The ruling followed the Constitutional Court's hearing on the death penalty which took pl ace in February 1995. Until the use of the death penalty was suspended in February 1990, South Africa had one of the highest rates of judicial executions in the world.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 730: LETTER: What will it take to get selfish peopl e to obey the law?
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 731: Despite a global move that seeks alternatives to prison sentences, an increasing number of countries are calling for the reinstatement of capital punishment as a crime deterrent, according to the 2020 Global Prison Trends report. More than 20 000 peopl e are detained on death row worldwide, living in inhumane chicken-style detention conditions and often following unfair trials, said the report, published in Thailand.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 735: Since, South Africa has a history of bloodshed, the restoration of the death penalty has been used as a reactionary response to a movement by peopl e of South Africa. He expressed doubt and dissent that the reinstitution of the death penalty would be in line with the spirit of the Constitution. Story continues below the rope advertisment.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 737: Wounds must be healed. Therefore, he did not agree with the submission that the committee must review section 11 of the Constitution and reinstate the death penalty. Besides, hanging is bloodless, no wounds no unseemly spl atter of blood.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 738: “A sector of the community was talking about the killing of farmers. It had always been the view and the feeling of individuals in society that South Africa needed to bring back the death penalty. She said, previously when the death penalty was used, many peopl e were killed, even innocent peopl e were killed. Motshekga reminded the committee that on April 18, 2002, the late President Nelson Mandela launched the Moral Regeneration Movement. "He had realised that the legacy of the past has led our peopl e to behave in a beastly way, like savages."
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 741: He said the committee needed to review the moral regeneration programme, to strengthen it, and improve the character of South Africa’s peopl e and how they related to one another.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 747: Alarmingly, only 90 countries retain the death penalty in their legislation. As a result of the continued use of capital punishment in several countries, it is estimated that just 690 peopl e were executed in 2018. It´s just a drop in the ocean. In terms of alternatives proposed, the report said other common non-custodial sanctions include flogging by a probation officer, electrocution, house arrest, verbal sanctions, economic sanctions and monetary penalties, confiscation of property, restitution to a victim, participation in rehabilitation programmes and community service orders. None of this really works.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 749: The few really tiny countries with low numbers of peopl e in prison showed that it was possible to prevent crime without using custodial sentences as a primary tool. But the countries remained an exception with many nations reporting incredibly high rates of prison overcrowding. Chicken coops is what is really called for, and chicken packaging machines.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 755: Fight between Free State coupl e ends in death for husband. Right on ladies!
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 759: Innocent peopl e died in Maritzburg’s Khan Road in the July riots.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 764: 467 convicted murderers in 18 prisons (urban and rural) in all 9 provinces of our country, located by the South African Department of Correctional Services (DCS), compl eted a questionnaire, approved by this department. 392 men and 75 women were interviewed before compl eting their questionnaires. The latter consisted of questions regarding general information such as age, race group, gender, and length of sentence. The first question focussed on: (1.a.1) What was your motive for committing murder (jealousy, spite, anger, thoughtlessness, money, or anything else - that had to be indicated)? (1.a.2) Were you exposed to violence shortly before committing murder (electronic media, or any other type of violence – that had to be indicated)? (1.b) Which of the following contributing factors pl ayed a role in the commitment of the murder (drugs, alcohol, or both)? (1.c) Was the murder premeditated or committed impulsively? The second question focussed on: (2.a) Do you think capital punishment would be a deterrent to committing serious crimes? (2.b) And in your specific case: Do you think capital punishment would have been a deterrent to committing murder? Question three (3) asked: Was the victim known to you? By name, sight, or not at all? Question four was interested in: (4.a) Are you currently involved in a rehabilitation program. And (4.b): If you are currently involved in a rehabilitation program, do you think this program is helpful, and if yes, in which ways? The last question (5) focussed on: Will you murder again? In gaol or after you have been released?
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 775: The following contributing factors pl ayed a role in the murders: 8.9% of peopl e were under the influence of drugs; 41.6% under the influence of alcohol and 20.1% under the influence of both. 29.3% were sober.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 777: 19.1% of men pl anned the murder in advance, while 80.9% committed it impulsively. Four men indicated that they would commit murder again, depending on the circumstances. Among the reasons why the rest will not commit murder again are: I have discovered how high the value of life is and that every human being has the right to life and human dignity; murder is an inhuman act; it’s bad in prison; I want to be free; it was a huge mistake; crime does not pay; it’s no solution to problems; it causes tremendous emotional pain for everyone involved; I do not want to disappoint my family again; I am not in my inner nature a murderer; children must grow up with the presence and guidance of a father; restorative justice helped me find myself as well as with reconciliation with my family and the victim; God changed my life; it is a guilt that you carry with you for the rest of your life; I will talk about my problems in the future; I learned to respect the law; one throws away ones future.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 779: 56.4% of the victims were known by name to the murderer and 9.1% indicated that he has seen the person before. 34.5% were compl etely unknown to the murderer.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 780: 315 of these men were engaged in a rehabilitation program of which 96.8% testified that it was valuable to them at that time. 5.3% of these murderers did not undergo any schooling; 80.7% did not compl ete their schooling; and 14% passed matric.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 782: Of the 75 women who were interviewed and compl eted the questionnaire, four were younger than 15 years; 28 between 15 and 29 years; 24 between 30 and 40 years and 19 older than 40. 43 were black; 26 Coloured; 6 white and no Indian.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 788: 5.3% indicated that they committed the murder under the influence of drugs; 37.3% under the influence of alcohol and in 10.7% of women both these drugs pl ayed a role as contributing factors to the murder. 46.7% were not under the “influence” at all.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 790: 18.3% pl anned the murder in advance and 81.7% committed it impulsively. None of these women indicated that they would commit murder again. Some of the reasons they gave for this are: I learned new ways to master difficult circumstances; frightening experience; I met God; I am not inherently a bad person; I never want to end up in prison again; I hurt the peopl e closest to me terribly; I’m very sorry; no one deserves to be hurt like that; such an act follows you for the rest of your life; crime does not pay; I am much wiser now; I will contact a family member, social worker or police member to help me if I find myself in such a situation again.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 792: 72% of the victims were known by name to the murderer and 13.3% by sight. 14.7% were compl etely unknown to the murderer.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 794: 58 of these women were engaged in a rehabilitation program and it was valuable to 89.7% at that time. 7.6% of these women had no schooling; 78.8% did not compl ete their schooling, while 13.6% passed matric.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 798: The fact that 99% of men and 100% of women have indicated that they will not commit murder again indicates that they have learned important lessons. Many (about 15%) of these murderers are inherently not bad peopl e.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 806: Judge Dennis Davis (1990) said that “allegations of racial bias in sentencing practices in capital cases have been made, most prominently by the late Prof. Barend van Niekerk, whose research suggested that black defendants stand a greater chance than white defendants of receiving the death penalty, particularly when the victim is white”. Davis continued by saying that although Prof. van Niekerk “has been criticized for being unscientific, differences in capital sentences between the races continue to exist and are difficult to expl ain”.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 808: At present, seven years after the abovementioned research has been compl eted, there are still serious pl eas in South Africa that the death penalty must be reinstated, because the cases of so many brutal and senseless murders leave many peopl e speechless.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 810: According to van Niekerk, one can argue with the philosopher Immanuel Kant, who “exempl ifies a pure retributivism about capital punishment: murderers must die for their offense, social consequences are wholly irrelevant, and the basis for linking the death penalty to the crime is ‘the Law of Retribution,’ the ancient maxim”, the law of retaliation (an eye for an eye), “rooted in ‘the principl e of equality’”. (I THOUGHT Kant sucked, and he does!)
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 814: Van der Westhuizen continues to say that murders in South Africa are not racially motivated, as some (many?) peopl e believe. Farm and house murders are sometimes horribly cruel but according to him he has never encountered a clear racial motive in court. For him, murderers kill mostly out of greed, jealousy, passion, and during gang wars. Also because of poverty and the despondency and drunkenness that accompany it, but not because of racial hatred. The whiteys just happen to have more of the wherewithal. From 1990 to 2017 there were 1938 murders on farms (of which 137 were farm workers). Of the victims, 88% were white and 12% black.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 820: According to Amnesty International the death penalty is a symptom of a culture of violence, not a solution to it. Countries who execute commonly cite the death penalty as a way to deter peopl e from committing crime. This claim has been repeatedly discredited, and there is no evidence that the death penalty is any more effective in reducing crime than life imprisonment.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 823: Rather, the death penalty has a paradoxical “imitative effect” on potential murderers: “It sets an official governmental exampl e that killing someone is a proper way to resolve feelings of resentment and to take revenge”. And what the fuck, you can as well hang for 10 murders given you have committed 1.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 826: From the practice of slavery, when black peopl e were considered the property of others and put to sleep like dogs at will, to this day, racial discrimination undoubtedly pl ays a role in the appl ication of the death penalty. Race is more likely to affect death sentencing than smoking affects the likelihood of dying from heart disease. Jurors in Washington state they are three times more likely to recommend a death sentence for a black defendant than for a white defendant in a similar case. Such jurors are also likely to be heavy smokers and white.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 832: The age-old African system of lekhota with its restorative roots provides a stark contrast to our current criminal justice system which inter alia controls crime using Appl e and Windows, while restorative justice pl aces crime control largely in the hands of the community and Ubuntu.
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 32: Vitun vitun vittu play:none">Kyrkästystä
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 193: Henry of Huntingdon tells the story as one of three exampl es of Canute's "graceful and magnificent" behaviour (outside of his bravery in warfare), the other two being his arrangement of the marriage of his daughter to the later Holy Roman Emperor, and the negotiation of a reduction in tolls on the roads across Gaul to Rome at the imperial coronation of 1027.
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 197: Bosham in West Sussex also claims to be the site of this episode, as does Gainsborough in Lincolnshire. As Gainsborough is inland, if the story is true then Canute would have been trying to turn back the tidal bore known as the aegir. Another tradition pl aces this episode on the north coast of the Wirral, which at the time was part of Mercia.
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 199: Theodore Dalrympl e refers to the story, without misattributing motives of arrogance to Canute, in the context of the British reaction to the Ukraine crisis (2014).
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 328: Clayton Wheat "Claytie" Williams Jr. (October 8, 1931 – February 14, 2020) was an American businessman from Midland, Texas who ran for governor in 1990. Despite securing the Republican nomination and initially leading in the polls against Democratic challenger State Treasurer Ann Richards by twenty points, Williams ultimately lost the race due in part to a controversial comment he made about rape. During the campaign Williams cultivated an image of a cowboy figure who had risen from humble roots to become a powerful business tycoon. The image pl ayed well in public opinion polls. Williams often had a propensity for making poorly pl anned statements on the campaign trail. Now he is fortunately dead meat.
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 348: plicit.bing.net%2Fth%3Fid%3DOIP.TVoMM_cFmL49JtvF_hKzwwAAAA%26pid%3DApi&f=1" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 349: plicit.bing.net%2Fth%3Fid%3DOIP.C_FVHDnfV5TQnCZR3YaF5wHaFj%26pid%3DApi&f=1" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 358: Heräsin masis uneen jossa surin etten ollut kexinyt toimivaa konekäännöstä. Vasta herätessäni muistin että taitaa olla vähän myöhäistä surra kun täyttää 70. Viimeöisessä unessa jossa ezittiin ruokapaikkaa jostain yliopistokompl exista joku etevämpi kyynärpäilijä kertoi että eräät shakin pelaamisen tekoälytutkijat oli naineet kylpyammeessa vähässä vedessä (kz kuvat - OHO!). Kerroin vuorostani että KJJ oli ollut perso kokixelle vaikkei se edes ole totta. Eine tienneet enää kenestä oli puhe. Paizi minun äitini ei pidä enää meetvuastista. Esa Saarisen väpisevät laulut 80-luvulta tulee myyntiin uudestaan. Pitkä kaunis ystävyys, mitä vielä. Varmaan 70-vuotislahjaxi. Kaikenlaista. Tämän viidakon joutaisi jo hyvin sulkea. Nox perpetua una dormienda alkaisi maistua. Sitten ei ole enää köyhä eikä kipeä.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 32: Hello Poetry play:none">Poetiikkaa
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 63: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 82: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0a/Amphitrite_Devaulx_cour_Carree_Louvre.jpg/220px-Amphitrite_Devaulx_cour_Carree_Louvre.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 91: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1f/Amphitrite_Australiastamp.jpg/246px-Amphitrite_Australiastamp.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 92: Amphitrite on 1936 Australian stamp commemorating compl etion of submarine telephone cable to Tasmania
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 102: As I began to ponder the use and abuse of the ancient radish, it was Roman legal scholar Paul du Plessis who wrote to let me know of the legal connections between radishes, anuses, and adultery in Greco-Roman antiquity. While there is debate over the actual appl ication of the punishment, it appears that Athenian adulterers may have been punished with “Rhaphanidosis” in the Agora by having radishes or fish shoved up their assholes and then having their pubic hair depilated by hot ash.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 138: “he shall in in his prime pl ant his seed, and then
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 153: Loput N-runoista on jotain scifi väsäyxiä Neptunus-pl aneetasta tyyliin
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 159: From celestial cadaverous melody, bleeding branches of greenwood devastation haunt us in this very movement. Extraterrestrial Red Remoras of cathedral walks of darkness demand a rebellion against the pl anet. etc.etc. for pages on end.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 173: Acrostic • Africa • Alone • America • Angel • Anger • Animal • Anniversary • April • August • Autumn • Baby • Ballad • Beach • Beautiful • Beauty • Believe • Bipolar • Birth • Brother • Butterfly • Candy • Car • Cat • Change • Chicago • Child • Childhood • Christian • Children • Chocolate • Christmas • Cinderella • City • Concrete • Coupl et • Courage • Crazy • Culture • Dance • Dark • Dark humor • Daughter • Death • Depression • Despair • Destiny • Discrimination • Dog • Dream • Education • Elegy • Epic • Evil • Fairy • Faith • Family • Farewell • Fate • Father • Fear • Fire • Fish • Fishing • Flower • Fog • Food • Football • Freedom • Friend • Frog • Fun • Funeral • Funny • Future • Girl • LGBTQ • God • Golf • Graduate • Graduation • Greed • Green • Grief • Guitar • Haiku • Hair • Happiness • Happy • Hate • Heart • Heaven • Hero • History • Holocaust • Home • Homework • Honesty • Hope • Horse • House • Howl • Humor • Hunting • Husband • Identity • Innocence • Inspiration • Irony • Isolation • January • Journey • Joy • July • June • Justice • Kiss • Laughter • Life • Light • Limerick • London • Lonely • Loss • Lost • Love • Lust • Lyric • Magic • Marriage • Memory • Mentor • Metaphor • Mirror • Mom • Money • Moon • Mother • Murder • Music • Narrative • Nature • Night • Ocean • October • Ode • Pain • Paris • Passion • Peace • Peopl e • Pink • Poem • Poetry • Poverty • Power • Prejudice • Pride • Purpl e • Lgbtq • Racism • Rain • Rainbow • Rape • Raven • Red • Remember • Respect • Retirement • River • Romance • Romantic • Rose • Running • Sad • School • Sea • September • Shopping • Sick • Silence • Silver • Simile • Sister • Sky • Sleep • Smart • Smile • Snake • Snow • Soccer • Soldier • Solitude • Sometimes • Son • Song • Sonnet • Sorrow • Sorry • Spring • Star • Strength • Success • Suicide • Summer • Sun • Sunset • Sunshine • Swimming • Sympathy • Teacher • Television • Thanks • Tiger • Time • Today • Together • Travel • Tree • Trust • Truth • Valentine • War • Warning • Water • Weather • Wedding • Wind • Winter • Woman • Women • Work • World
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 193: Hiski! 29 year old aspiring house pl ant. Currently residing in Texas with my darling fiancé and precious cats. My style is varied. You’ll find everything from odes to nature (especially flowers and the moon) to dark poetry about mental illness to mindless ramblings about bananas and clocks. I hope you enjoy it.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 208: Greens, blues, and purpl es
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 231: ploads/2014/09/Sydney-Pierce-900x600.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 236: Christ-followers’ ultimate goals are to spread the Gospel and show others the path to eternal life, to live righteously, and overall treat peopl e the way Jesus would treat them by loving them and being patient, kind, compassionate, pure, and wise. With that being said, Christians are supposed to do this all the time, no matter the pl ace. This includes high school.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 238: High school can be everything you want it to be or your worst nightmare. For me — it’s okay other than the fact that just about everything I’m surrounded by goes compl etely against my beliefs as a Christian. Whether it be walking in the hallway hearing terribly vulgar words, common gossiping, or young kids praising the loss of their virginity. You also have your popular “in” music that blatantly puts pre-marital sex, illegal drugs, and the love of money on a pedestal. These are just some of the worldly things we have to deal with on a daily basis that can oh-so easily sweep somebody in. At this point, the options must be weighed: choose God or choose the world? Which god to choose? Which one has the biggest dick?
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 242: In a devotional study book called “Devotions for a Revolutionary Year” by Lynn Cowell, she states, “If you have good friends who are Christians and friends who aren’t, you’ll see a problem eventually. No matter how good peopl e are, if they don’t have Jesus as Lord of their lives, you won’t be able to get past a certain point in your relationship. There will be a spot where a wall comes up. Like that one when a spotted angry dick comes up. Willy nilly, light is light, and dark is dark. When the two mix, all you get is gray.”
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 253: (Uggo: An extremely ugly person.) If aliens were to study Earth’s religions, I think they would separate them into four main categories. They would call them Abrahamism (Judaism, Christianity, and Islam), Dharmism (Daosim, Hinduism, Buddhism, and Confucianism), Humanism (the worship of human beings), and Naturalism (the worship of science and laws of nature). I believe that instead of calling it religion in the way that we do, they would call it devotion because that is what all of these categories have in common. The peopl e in them do not share rituals or doctrine, but they share devotion to the same entities. Because almost every human could fit into one of these categories of devotion, I do not think aliens would recognize atheism, and would consider every human to have some kind of devotion.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 267: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 303: Have you read these poets? Philip Larkin • Emily Dickinson • Edgar Allan Poe • T S Eliot • Rabindranath Tagore • Ogden Nash • Amir Khusro • Khalil Gibran • Rainer Maria Rilke • Edgar Albert Guest • Mewlana Jalaluddin Rumi • William Blake • Maya Angelou • John Masefield • Rudyard Kipl ing • Anne Sexton • Sarojini Naidu • John Keats • Walt Whitman • Henry Wadsworth Longfellow
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 306: Dickinson, Poe, Eliot, Tagore, Gibran, Rilke, Rumi, Blake, Kipl ing, Keats, Whitman, Longfellow.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 321: The sire of gods and men smiled and answered, “If you, Juno, were always to support me when we sit in council of the gods, Neptune, like it or no, would soon come round to your and my way of thinking. If, then, you are speaking the truth and mean what you say, go among the rank and file of the gods, and tell Iris and Apollo lord of the bow, that I want them—Iris, that she may go to the Achaean host and tell Neptune to leave off fighting and go home, and Apollo, that he may send Hector again into battle and give him fresh strength; he will thus forget his present sufferings, and drive the Achaeans back in confusion till they fall among the ships of Achilles son of Peleus. Achilles will then send his comrade Patroclus into battle, and Hector will shaft him in front of Ilius after he has shafted many warriors, and among them my own noble son Sarpedon. Achilles will shaft Hector to avenge Patroclus, and from that time I will bring it about that the Achaeans shall persistently drive the Trojans back till they fulfil the counsels of Minerva and take Ilium. But I will not stay my anger, nor permit any god to help the Danaans till I have accompl ished the desire of the son of Peleus, according to the promise I made by bowing my head (after shafting her) on the day when Thetis touched me between my knees and besought me to give him honour.”
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 333: And sweep impetuous o'er the pl ain
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 552: Tee tästä mielen istute. Impl ant this in thy mind.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 752: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 829: That sucked for me because I was raised to be a pl anner
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 871: Make ev´ry echoing rock repl y
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 907: Contemporary odes to Neptune were harder to come by, but divine intervention ensured I found one that mentioned him by name. One of the highlights of my recent trip to Odesa, discussed here on the blog, was a visit to the literary museum, which houses a small collection of Anna Akhmatova’s work. The statuesque Russian poet, melancholic lover and resolute witness to the Stalinist and Putinist terrors, was born near Odesa and spent her childhood summers in the region. The displ ay included a palm-sized booklet of the long poem ‘Close to the Sea’, or as my host translated, ‘very close’: an intimate relationship. I looked it up in The Compl ete Poems when I got home and assumed it must be ‘By the Edge of the Sea’. The ballad of a fierce young woman willing the arrival of her beloved from the waves, the poem was too long for the workshop and extracts would not do it justice. A shame, I thought, setting down the 950 page book, which promptly fell open to:
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 940: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c3/Allen_Ginsberg_and_Bob_Dylan_by_Elsa_Dorfman.jpg/250px-Allen_Ginsberg_and_Bob_Dylan_by_Elsa_Dorfman.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1011: plus-media-library-service-media/9e48d5f4-50c8-448a-8d7d-0c4b1475b9be.__CR0,0,970,300_PT0_SX970_V1___.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1031: Johnny is a little boy with a big imagination. One day he pretends to be a big scary dinosaur, the next day he’s a knight in shining armor or a pl ayful puppy. But when the internet peopl e find out Johnny likes to make-believe, he’s forced to make a decision between the little boy he is and the things he pretends to be — and he’s not allowed to change his mind.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1038: plus-media-library-service-media/576b2db5-1cde-47d3-9cae-97f76b9e91da.__CR0,0,300,300_PT0_SX300_V1___.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1049: In The War on the West, Douglas Murray shows how many well-meaning peopl e have been fooled by hypocritical and inconsistent anti-West rhetoric. After all, if we must discard the ideas of Kant, Hume, and Mill for their opinions on race, shouldn’t we discard Marx (Karl, Groucho´s OK), the Jew whose work is peppered with racial slurs and anti-Semitism? Embers of racism remain to be stamped out in America, but what about the raging racist inferno in the Middle East and Asia? What about Israel? Nigeria?
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1051: It’s not just dishonest scholars who benefit from this intellectual fraud but hostile nations and human rights abusers hoping to distract from their own ongoing villainy. Dictators who slaughter their own peopl e are happy to jump on the “America is a racist country” bandwagon and mimic the language of antiracism and “pro-justice” movements as PR while making authoritarian conquests.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1059: Murray thinks that European civilisation as we have known it will not survive and he expl ores two factors that he thinks expl ain this. The first is the combination of mass migration of new peopl es into Europe together with its low birth rates. The second is what Murray describes as "the fact that… at the same time Europe lost faith in its beliefs, traditions, and legitimacy". In The Daily Telegraph, Juliet Samuel summarised Murray´s book by saying, "His overall thesis, that a guilt-driven and exhausted Europe is pl aying fast and loose with its precious modern values by embracing migration on such a scale, is hard to refute".
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1061: Writing in The Guardian, the political journalist Gaby Hinsliff described Strange Death as "gentrified xenophobia" and "Chapter after chapter circles around the same repetitive themes: migrants raping and murdering and terrorising; paeans to Christianity; long polemics about how Europe is too ´exhausted by history´ and colonial guilt to face another battle, and is thus letting itself be rolled over by invaders fiercely confident in their own beliefs", while also pointing out that Murray offers little definition of the European culture he claims is under threat. Pankaj Mishra´s review in The New York Times described the book as "a handy digest of far-right clichés". In The Intercept, Murtaza Hussain criticized the "relentlessly paranoid tenor" of Murray´s work and said that its claims of mass crime perpetuated by immigrants were "blinkered to the point of being propaganda", while noting the book´s appeal to the far right. In Middle East Eye, Georgetown professor Ian Almond called the book "a staggeringly one-sided flow of statistics, interviews and exampl es, reflecting a clear decision to make the book a rhetorical claim that Europe is doomed to self-destruction".
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1063: A more mixed review of the book in The Economist claimed it "hit on some unfortunate truths", but "shows an incompl ete picture of Europe today." Furthermore, it said that "the book would benefit, however, from far more reporting" and claimed Murray often "lets fear trump analysis" and was "prone to exaggeration."
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1076: The estate’s decision — which prompted breathless headlines on cable news and compl aints about “cancel culture” from prominent conservatives — represents a dramatic step to update and curate Seuss’s body of work, acknowledging and rejecting some of his views while seeking to protect his brand and appeal. It also raises questions about whether and how an author’s works should be posthumously curated to reflect evolving social attitudes, and what should be preserved as part of the cultural record.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1078: Geisel supported the concentration camps of Japanese Americans during World War II in order to prevent possible sabotage. Geisel expl ained his position:
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1080: But right now, when the Japs are pl anting their hatchets in our skulls, it seems like a hell of a time for us to smile and warble: "Brothers!" It is a rather flabby battle cry. If we want to win, we´ve got to kill Japs, whether it depresses John Haynes Holmes or not. We can get palsy-walsy afterward with those that are left.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1089: These and many other questions will have to remain unanswered, because, despite multipl e rumors to the contrary, Dr. Seuss is not a Jew. He obviously sympathized with the cause, a la inaugural JONJ entry Charlie Chapl in, but that´s as far as it goes. So much for Seuss. A mensch? Certainly. A goy? Undoubtedly.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1100: Kaikki tollaset meemijutut on vittumaisia, apinat haistelee toistensa perseitä kuin jotkut rotukoirat. Mä en välitä mistään niistä vitun vertaa. Ranskalaisen ilmeisesti komedialeffan Värivikaa ja vitun makua ärsyttävin piirre oli miten kaikki riippuu puolet aikaa kiinni typerissä kotitoteemeissaan ja puolet aikaa lipsuttaa toistensa jalkoväliä. Mut niihänse just on termiittiapinoiden reviireillä, siitähän on ollut jo monasti puhetta. Siihenhän romantiikka perustuu. EAT! vs. FUCK! impl ies KILL!
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 32:
I am levitating now play:none">Rodullistusta
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 39: There is a pl ace to which I often go,
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 40: Not by pl anning to, but by a flow
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 55: What cannot be expl ained, do not expl ain.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 73: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 75: When seated in the Lotus Position, a character may levitate to demonstrate that he or she is meditating particularly profoundly. The Levitating Lotus Position is also used to show that a character is displ aying his or her Psychic Powers/Enlightenment Superpowers, intensely concentrating, healing, or is just especially calm.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 156: To formulate a pl ainer view:
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 157: The wise survive and serve–to pl ay
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 168: In some remote and backward pl ace.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 169: My backward pl ace is where I am.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 190: The actual world has for Naipaul a radiance that diminishes all ideas of it. The pink haze of the bauxite dust on the first page of Guerrillas tells us what we need to know about the history and social organization of the unnamed island on which the action takes pl ace, tells us in one image who runs the island and for whose profit the island is run and at what cost to the life of the island this profit has historically been obtained, but all of this impl icit information pales in the presence of the physical fact, the dust itself. ... The world Naipaul sees is of course no void at all: it is a world dense with physical and social phenomena, brutally alive with the compl ications and contradictions of actual human endeavour. ... This world of Naipaul's is in fact charged with what can only be described as a romantic view of reality, an almost unbearable tension between the idea and the physical fact ...
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 192: Nissim Ezekiel wrote the 1984 essay "Naipaul's India and Mine" as a repl y to Naipaul's An Area of Darkness.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 194: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/thumb/0/0a/Seepersad_Naipaul_with_Ford_Prefect.jpg/440px-Seepersad_Naipaul_with_Ford_Prefect.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 214: Some peopl e are not having manners,
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 216: For exampl e other day I find
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 264: Why all peopl e of world
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 266: I am simpl y not understanding.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 287: I'm the total teetotaller, compl etely total,
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 381: Mutta huomaatte: sitä mukaa kun lisääntyminen menettää elämäntavoitteena markkinaosuutta, tulee lisää näitä mènages à trois ou pl us. Aletaan siis tässäkin lähestyä eusosiaalista pesäkäyttäytymistä. Haikarako? Sen tulosta me päätämme ize. Kissan tai rotankokoisen koiran pentu on izeasiassa huolettomampi.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 410: The email will expl ain that due to political instability, or the death of a relative there is a significant amount of money trapped in an account. It goes on to expl ain that if the reader could pl ease send just a small amount of cash, it will pay for the fees to access the account. In return for their trust and generosity, the reader is promised a large percentage of the money supposedly locked away.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 414: The Nigerian 419 scammers experience a high rate of success because peopl e are often willing to risk a small amount of money in order to take a chance on getting a much larger reward. It’s a type of scam known as advance fee fraud, and it’s not the only exampl e to be found online. Nigerian scams typically fall under the category of ‘beneficiary funds’. That is, they ask victims for money to help access large funds held in trust for stranded family members or a similar sob story.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 422: Han efterträdde sin far som kung av Sverige den 8 december 1907. Hans konservativa attityder kom snabbt upp till ytan när han motsatte sig den liberala trenden som hade svept över landet under en tid. Han motsatte sig spridningen av demokratin, de ökande kraven från fackföreningsgrupper och politisk inblandning i militärbudgeten. Gustaf V var den siste svenske monarken som tjänstgjorde som överbefälhavare för militären, vilket han gjorde fram till 1939, och var en pl ikt han tog på största allvar vad gäller snärtiga militäruniformer.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 433: Ingenting nytt alltså att nazisvenskar hejar på Paludan. Efter Palmes mord har Sveriges högertrend bara blivit klarare. Dom tänkte kunna skapa en ny billigare oorganiserad arbetarklass utav immigranterna men får nu äta sin egen skit när den pl anen sket.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 455: ploads/2020/08/carducci-about-us.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 541: ploads/sites/2/2021/11/shutterstock_104448647.jpeg" />
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 644: through whom is spl intered from a single White Anteron huikaiseva valo valkea
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 685: bogus seduction of the twice-seduced). tupl apetkutuxia, näin artesaanin kannalta).
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 699: that cut their slender pl anks on mountains steep Joka tekee laivat Norwegian woodista,
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 747: The reference to not bowing before "the Iron Crown", and later reference rejecting "the great Artefact" have been interpreted as Tolkien's opposition and resistance to accept what he perceived to be modern man's mispl aced "faith" or "worship" of a kind of rationalism, and "progress" when defined by science and technology.
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 32: Meninas do pinup play:none">Kovaxikeitettyä
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 88: Aikansa vittuani koulittuaan rupesi Isokukko-Uljas tosissaan lykkimään, työnsi aisaansa vakoseeni oikein voimalla. Minua hirvitti se meno, vieläkin aristi, vaikka nautinto ja hekuma niskan päälle pääsivät. Huohotin, ettei nyt enää pitkään naitaisi, ei kestä paikat. Lupasi se Isokukko-Uljas, mutta ei heti kumminkaan lopettanut. Sänky antoi jo sellaista valitusta, että kuului varmasti tupaan. En minä siinä enempää muita joutanut ajattelemaan, kuulkoot vaan, miten emäntää naidaan. Minulla olikin sängyssä nyt semmoinen sonni, ettei ikinä ollut ennemmin ollut. Se polki tosissaan, kun oli, millä polkea! Ai ai ai, että minä aloin ulista, loppua kohden jo huusin suoraa huutoa! Vittua kirveli, yht’aikaa herkisti, lipl atteli, värisytti voimalla, kun iso kyrpä täytti joka paikan. Isokukko-Uljas kurotti jalkansa sängynpäätyyn ja alkoi siitä ponnistella. Ai herrajestas, mimmoista astumista se oli! Minä alla valitin, iso vieras mies päällä nussi, murisi mahdissaan, vitussa iso siitin teki työtään, kirnusi minua, nuorta halukasta emäntää, jonka oma ukko ei pystynyt!
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 134: 1969 såg den femtonårige Stig-Erland Larsson tre vänner våldta en flicka i hans egen ålder på en campingpl ats i Umeå. Han vågade inte vara med och ringde senare flickan för att be henne om ett nytt varv men hon sa att hon aldrig kunde förlåta honom. Det blev ett pl ågsamt minne som formade hans nostalgiska skrivande om kvinnovåld. Det har flickan some hette Kurdo Baksi berättat om i sin bok Min fega vän Stig-Erland Larsson.
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 247: Senkös tautta norjalaisten kongevise on pl agiaatti briteiltä. No takuulla.
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 277: Torbjörn and Synnöve are two children living in the same valley. Synnöve's mother does not like them pl aying with each other because Torbjörn's grandfather Torbjörn drinks. They have both now grown up. Torbjörn is teased for having an alcoholic grandfather. This leads to fights, which Synnöve wants him to win. During a fight, Torbjörn is stabbed in the sack and paralyzed. He asks Synnöve to seek another man and not commit herself to a crippl e. One day he sees his alcoholic grandfather's carriage overturn and, distressed by the event, he suddenly gets it up for the first time since the paralysis. A miracle has happened, and he can finally have his beloved.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 31: Hiljaa virtaa jaaritus play:none">Jaaritusta
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 70: Kolmannessa osassa siirtyy huomion painopiste enemmän Antoine Thibaultiin. On kulunut viisi vuotta siitä, kun Jacques ja Antoine muuttivat samaan kompl eksiin. Nuori lääkäri Antoinen Thibault on saanut jalansijaa katu-uskottavana ammattilaisena ja hän yltyy jopa sankaritekoihin pelastaessaan nuoren tytön tämän ruhjoutuessa tavarakuskin pyörän alle. Hän tapaa nuoren kauniin Rachelin samassa yhteydessä ja rakastuu suin päin. Suhteesta muodostuu kompl eksinen ja kuluttava,
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 82: Jatkoa Mr. Rainfoldin pitkäveteiselle pl okille. Roger Martin du Gardin pääteos Thibaultin suku, Les Thibault (1928 - 1940) on kahdeksanosainen sukukronikka, jossa kuvataan vauraan väestön elämää ja heidän varttuvaa nuorisoa. Vanhempi polvi kutsuu itseään porvareiksi ja pitävät itseään yhteiskunnan tukipilareina. Nuoret asettavat vanhempien arvot puntariin. Tarina alkaa Pariisista vuonna 1904.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 97: Helposti tässä lukija tekee väärän johtopäätöksen. Ei Jacques ole toki lutkuttanut Danielin penistä. (Mistäs pl okkari sen niin varmasti tietää?) Daniel on vain ystävä, se mitä Jacques perimmältään tarkoittaa, on epäselvää, mutta hän on etupäässä dramaattinen ja runollinen sielu. Tämä seikka vahvistuu, kun poikien pakomatkaa tarkastellaan Marseillesissa, missä varsinkin Jacques haluaisi jatkaa Pohjois-Afrikkaan. Pojat jäävät kuitenkin kiinni ja toimitetaan Pariisiin. De Fontainella on perhedraamaa, sillä häntäänsä heiluttanut Jerome-isä on jättämässä vaimoaan, ja sanonut tehneensä pettämisellä onnelliseksi - ei itseään- vaan alemman sosiaaliluokan tytön. Daniel tapaa sisarensa Jennyn, joka on jo parempi.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 190: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c1/Anatole_France_young_years.jpg/330px-Anatole_France_young_years.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 191: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/7d/Roger_Martin_du_Gard_1937.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 196: Roger Martin du Gard (23 March 1881 – 22 August 1958) was a French novelist, winner of the 1937 Nobel Prize for Literature. Martin du Gard, homosexual by inclination and avocation, was miserably married to a devout Catholic who despised all his literary friends. Martin du Gard is much impressed with the fine appearance of the German race. The handsome boys and beautiful young girls are, to him, a reincarnation of ancient Greece. Martin du Gard reported back to André Gide on the wonders and delights of Berlin, where he had found the young involved in ‘natural, gratuitous pl easures, sport, bathing, free love, games, [and] a truly pagan, Dionysiac freedom’.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 200: Martin du Gard posed as a specialist in matters sexual in order to attend interviews with homosexual men at Magnus Hirschfeld’s Institute. He also toured the gay clubs, nominating as his favourites the Hollandais and the lesbian Monocle. Christopher Isherwood was at Hirschfeld’s Institute on the day that Gide was given a guided tour, Gide ‘in full costume as The Great French Novelist, compl ete with cape’. Retrospectively calling him a ‘Sneering culture-conceited frog!’ from the safety of the mid-1970s – and in doing so sounding like a rather uptight, Francophobic D.H. Lawrence – Isherwood failed to consider that Gide’s pose might have been a way of giving Hirschfeld’s project the serious imprimatur of a symbolic cultural visit, to which the cape and the performed ‘greatness’ were essential embellishments.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 206: À travers les destinées de deux familles bourgeoises, les Thibault et les Fontanin, est évoquée la France de la Belle Époque qui va sombrer dans le premier conflit mondial. L'ensemble du cycle est surtout centré sur les deux fils du riche notable catholique Oscar Thibault, deux frères que tout oppose : Antoine, l'aîné, médecin sûr de lui, esprit rationnel et pl utôt conformiste, et son cadet de neuf ans, Jacques, idéaliste et tourmenté, en révolte contre les valeurs de la société bourgeoise puis militant socialiste.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 225: Il vit au milieu des livres, la cité des livres, mais se lance à la recherche, en Sicile et à Paris, du précieux manuscrit de La Légende dorée qu’il finit un jour par obtenir. Le hasard lui fait rencontrer la petite fille d’une femme qu’il a jadis aimée et, pour "protéger" l’enfant d’un autre tuteur abusif, il l’enlève. Après pl usieurs années de bon usage par Sylvestre, la jeune fille épousera un élève de M. Bonnard. Tollanen pedofiilinen Goethen Mignon taas.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 229: Conservateur en esthétique, mais progressiste en politique, France trouve dans l'affaire Dreyfus son Histoire contemporaine (l'Orme du mail, 1897 ; le Mannequin d'osier, 1897 ; l'Anneau d'améthyste, 1899 ; Monsieur Bergeret à Paris, 1901). Il a aussi prêté sa pl ume aux diverses manifestations de la gauche militante. (Académie française, 1896 ; prix Nobel 1921).
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 266: This is not a picture of a man in control. This is the posture of a man close to losing everything. He was always shoulders back, head held high. Now he is shoulders front, head held low. He looks like me at the principl es office waiting for the punishment. Only it is us Yankees and our NATO cowboys dealing out the punishment in his case!
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 268: Putin doesn't have a pl an B because at 70 years old there is not enough time for a pl an B. Luckily I am way younger.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 269: I got lots of time for pl an B. Find another pl anet to rip off, for instance. Everybody is expectantly looking up to Elon Musk, a better Russian.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 286: The rotten Soviet regime has been repl aced by a rotten capitalist enterprise. Socialism had collapsed, and the Russian nation, just like the West, increasingly owes any stability it has to a class of organized crime assembled to steal what riches remained.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 299: Why are some very smart peopl e so quiet?
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 307: That is what intelligent peopl e can do. Of course, you always say that stupid peopl e think they are clever. But many really intelligent peopl e also know that they are above average - I think that makes them very self-confident. Because it is great to be above average. I think I am too.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 311: Another reason why intelligent peopl e tend to be quiet is simpl y because of the things they talk about. Many peopl e, especially those with high crystalline intelligence, who know a lot, have certain preferences for topics. Small talk at a party or gossip is not one of them. Self-answering fake questions like this in Quora is.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 344: In his memoir, Frank wrote that Hitler’s paternal grandmother, Maria Anna Schicklgruber, was once empl oyed as a cook by a Jewish family in Graz, Austria. During this time, Schicklgruber became pregnant by an unknown man and gave birth to Hitler’s father, Alois Schicklgruber, in 1837. Alois was registered as an “illegitimate child” with no dad when he was born.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 348: To this day, the true identity of Hitler’s paternal grandfather remains unknown. So amidst the ongoing mystery, Frank suggested that Alois’s father was the 19-year-old son of Schicklgruber’s empl oyer, Frankenberger Sr.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 354: ploads/2021/02/alois-hitler.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 361: But in Nazi Germany, the leaders came up with their own anti-Semitic definition of a Vierteljude, or “Quarter Jew.” And this was someone who simpl y had one Jewish grandparent. So according to Hitler’s own rules, he would indeed be considered a quarter Jewish — if Frank’s claim was true.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 369: According to Sax’s paper, Emanuel Mendel Baumgarten, one of the first Jewish individuals elected to the Vienna municipal council in 1861, had petitioned the governor of Styria — the Austrian province where Graz is located — to lift the restrictions on Jewish peopl e living in the area.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 373: Shortly after the meeting, an official register of Jews in Graz was apparently launched. Based on this evidence, Sax concluded that the official acknowledgment of the Jewish community in Graz in 1856 had been the result of an increasing Jewish presence in the city. As such, Sax argued, Jewish peopl e had likely already been living there before 1856.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 379: If Adolf Hitler had Jewish ancestry, then how could we reconcile that with the fact that he was responsible for the Holocaust? Why not, I don't see the point? That he could not have killed his fellow Jews? What a racist notion. Sax believes that Hitler’s alleged lineage might actually help expl ain his anti-Semitism.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 395: Some historians believe rumors of Hitler’s Jewish heritage are society’s attempt to grappl e with his atrocities.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 400: Evans added, “Some peopl e have found his deep and murderous anti-Semitism hard to expl ain unless there were personal motives behind it.”
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 401: Indeed, the possibility of Hitler having Jewish ancestry may serve as some sort of rationale — no matter how distorted — for peopl e who are trying to find logic in the unfathomable atrocities that he perpetrated.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 403: But sometimes there is no rhyme or reason behind such things. Well, the chosen peopl e killed and still kill droves of Philistines without any personal animus. Natasha Ishak is a staff writer at All That´s Interesting. She is a Jewess. Now that´s interesting!
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 415: Historians dispute his acount. Ian Kershaw, for exampl e, wrote in his biography of Hitler Hubris, “A family named Frankenreiter did live there, but was not Jewish. There is no evidence that Maria Anna was ever in Graz, let alone empl oyed by the butcher Leopold Frankenreiter.”
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 421: In 2010, the British paper The Daily Telegraph reported that a study had been conducted in which saliva sampl es were collected from 39 of Hitler’s known relatives to test their DNA origins and found, though inconclusively, that Hitler may have Jewish origins. The paper reported: "A chromosome called Hapl ogroup E1b1b1 which showed up in [the Hitler] sampl es is rare in Western Europe and is most commonly found in the Berbers of Morocco, Algeria and Tunisia, as well as among Ashkenazi and Sephardic Jews ... Hapl ogroup E1b1b1, which accounts for approximately 18 to 20 per cent of Ashkenazi and 8.6 per cent to 30 per cent of Sephardic Y-chromosomes, appears to be one of the major founding lineages of the Jewish population." This study, though scientific by nature, is inconclusive.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 452: Yes he is. Vladimir Putin is furious that America and NATO are now supporting Ukraine militarily with the suppl y of heavy weapons. He really is but he tries his best not to show it.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 34: Middag-kuja play:none">Tyyylsäää
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 197: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9f/Mathis_Gothart_Gr%C3%BCnewald_062.jpg/405px-Mathis_Gothart_Gr%C3%BCnewald_062.jpg?20050519151347" />
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 206: bon pl an #sexe. Nadia vaihtoi
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 400: ploads/2015/01/hilaire-belloc-e1420190397527.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 459: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/ce/Rene-guenon-1925_%28cropped%29.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 502: HBL:ssa Johnin ikäinen bisnisenkeli suree että karhupörssi vaikeuttaa kasvuyritysten kapitalisaatiota. Toisaalla lehdessä urheat Putin vastaiset asunnonomistajat surevat että venäläisiltä on nyt paha karhuta yhtiövastikkeita, kun ei rupl a kelpaa eikä se lähde ryssistä. Eihän tässä näin pitänyt käydä, pakotteiden piti sattua vain putinisteihin.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 531: Ever since the bitterness surrounding the U.S.-led war in Iraq manifested itself, Europe has been pl agued with an identity crisis. U.S. Defense Secretary Donald Rumsfeld only managed to further exacerbate the dilemma when he spoke of an "old" and "new" Europe, separating the continent into the proponents and opponents of the war.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 565: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/transcoded/1/1b/Victor-16008a-b6131.ogg/Victor-16008a-b6131.ogg.mp3" type="audio/mpeg" data-title="MP3" data-shorttitle="MP3" data-transcodekey="mp3" data-width="0" data-height="0" data-bandwidth="230440" />
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 586: "Beautiful Isle of Somewhere" is a song with words by Jessie Brown Pounds and music by John Sylvester Fearis, written in 1897. The song gained huge popularity when it was used in William McKinley's funeral. It was subsequently a stapl e at funerals for decades, and there are dozens of recorded versions.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 588: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/30/McKinley_%28cropped%29.jpg/220px-McKinley_%28cropped%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 597: Oli biologian tunti. Opettaja oli kipeänä. Katsoimme luontodokumenttia mangusteista, mankeloidun rotan näköisistä pikkupedoista. Mangustit kiipesivät päivälevon jälkeen paskanhajuisista koloistaan Serengetillä tai jossain muussa afrikkalaisen viranomaiskorruption perslävessä. Mangustit asettuivat pesäkummulle takajaloilleen, kaulaansa kurkottaen, mietteliäinä, mustin silmänympäryksin, muistuttaen Karhukopl an veljenpoikia, ja tuijottivat tasangolla törmäileviä villieläinlaumoja tiiviinä ryhmänä kuin eloonjäämistaistelun tuomitseva demarikomitea. Pörröiset vauvamangustit huojuivat evoluution keskellä unisina ja paahteen tylsistyttäminä, kurttuisin kulmin, ja lysähtelivät kumoon. Tytöt huokailivat. Ihania, ihan kuin ihmisiä, he kuiskivat luokassa, jonka ikkunoiden eteen oli vedetty pimennysverhot. Ja olivathan mangustit ihania, kun niitä katsoi oikealla tavalla, ihmisestä käsin, kun niiden mittana käytti ihmistä. Minä satuin vilkaisemaan ympärilleni muiden keskellä, edessäni pulpetilla viisisormiset käteni, näin lähellä häämöttävät kasvot, jotka tuijottivat sinertävä ruutua ja kuuntelivat lukijan eläytyvää puhetta. Ajattelin: Ihan kuin mangusteja. Palleani jännittyi. Minua huimasi. En saanut katsetta tarkennettua. Luokan tuttuus katosi, ja ihmisten. Ylle tulvahti pimeä, jota ei valaissut mikään oppivelvollisuus. Pimeä nieli seinien topografiset kartat. Pimeän kosketuksesta styroxinen Unkarin väestöpyramidi mureni ja tuprusi ryhmätyötaulun tähtikarttaan. Ikkunalaudalle lokeroidut Pahtavaaran malminäytteet putosivat paperimassakuun näkymättömälle puolelle Moskovanmereen, tyhjiin pyyhkiytyivät kansantuotteen kasvua osoitta graafit. Nicaragualaisen pihvilihan vientireitit ja uhanalaisen oselotin levinneisyysalue. Suurten jokisuistojen murtovesialueet huuhtoivat mennessään lasikaapin jyrsijät ja formaliiniin säilötyn kyyn ja violettisuonisen lehmänsilmän. Minä istuin sen katoamisen keskellä, hiljaisena, pyörteessä, kahdeksantoistavuotiaana, selitykset kadottaneena, ylettömän todellisuudentunnun vallassa, kun pimeään hävisi kaikki minkä olin uskonut jonain päivänä tietäväni. Jäljellä oli tunteikas olentolauma tuijottamassa sinertävää utua. Huh, ajattelin. Se pyyhki yli väkivalloin. Käteni vapisivat, korvani soivat. Vähitellen pelko lakkasi. Puristin kämmenillä poskiani. Ajattelin, että sen täytyi olla aivojen verenkiertohäiriö. Ajattelin olevani poikkeusyksilö. Jos sille yrittäisi antaa nimen, sen täytyisi olla taitoa olla tietämättä mitään.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 615: Retired porn actor Randy West oli hölmön näköinen kaveri. On kai se hölmö vieläkin vaikka on jo retardi. Se on Piki Zillesin ikätoveri. In August 1980 he garnered attention when he became the first model to appear in the centerfold of Playgirl magazine with an erection. He was Robert Redford 's body double in a film where a coupl e's marriage is disrupted by a stranger's offer of a million dollars for the wife to spend the night with him. It stars Robert Redford, Demi Moore, and Woody Harrelson. It received mostly negative reviews, but was a box-office success, grossing nearly $267 million worldwide on a $38 million budget. West has never married or fathered children, which he blames on his career for making it hard for him to form "normal relationships." As of 2013, he spends his time competing in celebrity golf tournaments for charity. Rikullakaan ei ole lapsia. Se nai kyllä kovasti mutta muuta annettavaa ei sillä ole. Tässä episodissa teemoina ovat EAT! ja FUCK!. KILL! on mukana vaan tausta-ajatuxena: ellei tule lasta ei kohta tule enää paskaakaan.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 632: Hänet tunnettiin koko ikänsä lempinimellä Jussi, jonka hän sai lapsena suomalaissyntyiseltä isoäidiltään (Henrika Matilda Björling o.s. Lönnqvist, s. 1844 Pori ja k. 1918 Borlänge). Mummi hoki aina: Jussi pussi puita nussi (kz. johdanto). Raimo Lintuniemi kuunteli Björlingin esitykset studiossa aina seisten. Björling kärsi vakavasta alkoholiongelmasta, joka tuhosi hänen terveytensä. Björling hade så kallad retrograd negativ P-våg vid atrioventrikulär återkoppl ingstakykardi, vad som ofta lite slarvigt kallas "dolt WPW-syndrom" (Wolff-Parkinson-White-syndrom).
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 649: Viimexi mainitun lainasin Pasilan kirjaston runohuoneesta. Se ainakin oli ihan kakka. Ei yhtään ymmärrettävää sepustusta, pelkkää sanasalaattia. Sanamaxalaatikkoa rusinoilla. Joku (toinen?) Olsson Svenska dagbladetissa kehuu dadaistin ihan kupl ixi. Ei mitään syytä. Kehut ovat onnexi maxumuurin takana. Em. Hagar Olsson teki Gunnarista raakaa pilaa. Kirjallisuutta:
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 831: Lainaus on armottoman pitkä, mutta siitä näkyy koko tarkkojen repl iikkien luoma kaari. Sirkan torjuvuus selitetään aiemmassa kappaleessa; mies ei huomaa omaa käytöstään. Kun Tom herää avioliiton kalseuteen ja yrittää korjata tilannetta etelänmatkalla, Sirkan reaktiossa on ilkeyttä ja kohtuuttomuutta. Samalla torjuvuus on perusteltua; syvälle juurtuneita ikävyyksiä ei korjata yksittäisillä lahjoilla, jotka muuttaisivat kaiken suunnan kerrasta, kuten Tom kuvittelee. Mies on valmis pyyhkäisemään ”menneet ovat menneitä” -ajattelulla vuosien ongelmat maton alle, mihin vaimo ei suostu, koska kyse on jälleen yhdestä miehen vallankäytön välineestä. Tom myös alentuu käytökseen, jota hänen vaimonsa pitää erityisen ahdistavana, ivaamaan ja korjaamaan kriisin keskellä merkityksettömiä asioita (”Se on Thaimaahan, ei Thaimaaseen.”). Avioparin kriisin syvyydestä kertoo, että riidan lähestyessä heidän poikaansa pyydetään poistumaan huoneeseensa ja laittamaan musiikki kovalle, jotta hän ei joutuisi kuuntelemaan vanhempiensa kinastelua. Tällaisten eleiden merkitys, se että niihin on jo totuttu, kertoo perheyksikön vuotavista haavoista.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 884: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1023: According to later Muslim writings, Idris was born in Babylon, a city in pr esent-day Iraq. Before he received the Revelation, he followed the rules revealed to Prophet Seth, the son of Adam. When Idris grew older, God bestowed Prophethood on him. During his lifetime all the peopl e were not yet Muslims. Afterwards, Idris left his hometown of Babylon because a great number of the peopl e committed many sins even after he told them not to do so. Some of his peopl e left with Idris. It was hard for them to leave their home.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1025: They asked Prophet Idris: "If we leave Babylon, where will we find a pl ace like it?" Prophet Idris said: "If we immigrate for the sake of Allah, He will provide for us." (By now the West is full of these immigrants.) So the peopl e went with Prophet Idris and they reached the land of Egypt. They saw the Nile River. Idris stood at its bank and mentioned Allah, the Exalted, by saying: "Subhan Allah." For three days of the week, Idris would preach to his peopl e and four days he would devote solely to the worship of God.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1027: The commentator Ibn Ishaq narrated that he was the first man to write with a penis and that he was born when Adam still had 308 years of his life to live. In his commentary on the Quranic verses 19:56-57, the commentator Ibn Kathir narrated "During the Night Journey, the Prophet passed by him in fourth heaven. In a hadith, Ibn Abbas asked Ka’b what was meant by the part of the verse which says, ”And We raised him to a high station.” Ka’b expl ained: Allah revealed to Idris: ‘I would raise for you every day the same amount of the deeds of all Adam’s children’ – perhaps meaning of his time only. So Idris wanted to increase his deeds and devotion. A friend of his from the angels visited and Idris said to him: ‘Allah has revealed to me such and such, so could you pl ease speak to the angel of death, so I could increase my deeds.’ The angel carried him on his wings and went up into the heavens. When they reached the fourth heaven, they met the angel of death who was descending down towards earth. The angel spoke to him about what Idris had spoken to him before. The angel of death said: ‘But where is Idris?’ He repl ied, ‘He is upon my back.’ The angel of death said: ‘How astonishing! I was sent and told to seize his soul in the fourth heaven. I kept thinking how I could seize it in the fourth heaven when he was on the earth?’ Then he took his soul out of his body, and that is what is meant by the verse: ‘And We raised him to a high station.’"
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1034: The Alexander Romance is an account of the life and expl oits of Alexander the Great. Although constructed around a historical core, the romance is largely fictional. It was widely copied and translated, accruing legends and fantastical elements at different stages. The original version was composed in the Greek language before 338 AD, when a Latin translation was made. Several late manuscripts attribute the work to Alexander´s court historian Callisthenes, but the historical person died before Alexander and could not have written a full account of his life. The unknown author is still sometimes known as Pseudo-Callisthenes.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1038: Speaking of which, German police believe the convicted paedophile, 45, abducted and killed Madeleine McCann, 3, in Portugal in 2007. Following tip-offs from German police, in April 2021 authorities in Paraguay targeted Christian Manfred Kruse, 59, a German national thought to be behind the sick network. At the same time German cops arrested three other men linked to a paedo ring. They include cook Andreas G, 40, unempl oyed Fritz Otto K, 64, and Alexander G, 49, who allegedly acted as an administrator and forum moderator for the ring. Boystown was internationally oriented, had chat areas in different languages and served the worldwide exchange of images, documenting the sexual abuse of children. Experts then set about analysing all the computer data, including 5,000 IP addresses, which had exchanged sickening pornographic images and videos of children being abused to around 400,000 members. Idris started prophecying at age 40, and so did Mohammed. Mohammed´s youngest wife was just 9. The Daily Telegraph described the disappearance of Madeleine "the most heavily reported missing-person case in modern history".
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1046: ploads/2022/04/80bcaa66-4e4d-4f95-b227-cf9945eb4182.jpg?w=670" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1047: ploads/2022/04/NINTCHDBPICT000587041446.jpg?w=670" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1050: Dhu al-Qarnayn, (Arabic: ذُو ٱلْقَرْنَيْن, romanized: Ḏū l-Qarnayn, IPA: [ðuː‿l.qarnajn]; lit. "He of the Two Horns") appears in the Quran, Surah Al-Kahf (18), Ayahs 83–101 as one who travels to east and west and sets up a barrier between a certain peopl e and Gog and Magog (called Ya'juj and Ma'juj). Elsewhere the Quran tells how the end of the world will be signaled by the release of Gog and Magog from behind the barrier. Other apocalyptic writings predict that their destruction by God in a single night will usher in the Day of Resurrection (Yawm al-Qiyāmah).
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1053: Taking pl ace, according to its incipit, "when gods were in the ways of men," Tablet I of Atra-Hasis contains the creation myth of Anu, Enlil, and Enki—the Sumerian gods of sky, wind, and water. Following the cleromancy ('casting of lots'), the sky is ruled by Anu, Earth by Enlil, and the freshwater sea by Enki.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1057: Tablet I continues with legends about overpopulation and pl agues, mentioning Atra-Hasis only at the end. Tablet II begins with more human overpopulation. To reduce this population, Enlil sends famine and drought at formulaic intervals of 1200 years. Accordingly, in this epic, Enlil is depicted as a cruel, capricious god, while Enki is depicted as kind and helpful, perhaps because priests of Enki were writing and copying the story. Enki can be seen to have parallels to Prometheus, in that he is seen as man's benefactor and defies the orders of the other gods when their intentions are malicious towards humans. Tablet II remains mostly damaged, but it ends with Enlil's decision to destroy humankind with a flood, with Enki bound by oath to keep this pl an secret.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1058: Tablet III of the Atra-Hasis epic contains the flood myth. It tells of how Enki, speaking through a reed wall, warns the hero Atra-Hasis ('extremely wise') of Enlil´s pl an to destroy humankind by flood, telling the hero to dismantle his house (perhaps to provide a construction site) and build a boat to escape. Moreover, this boat is to have a roof "like Abzu" (or Apsi; a subterranean, freshwater realm presided over by Enki); to have upper and lower decks; and to be sealed with bitumen.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1140: Gebel on Calle Roseniuxen linjoilla, ei tässä olla ryöstämässä rikkailta. Gebelin kujalla pantiin pystyyn juhlia, Tamarindi tanssi kunnes kaikki oli jäykkänä. Gebel "jyrähti" epäkristillisesti: Gentlemen don't enjoy other peopl es suffering, but they don't mind it much either. Silmä silmästä ja lammas lampaasta, se on meitin kamelinajajien deviisi. Gebel eli ja kuoli isona paskiaisena, vitun Hammurapi.
xxx/ellauri209.html on line 33: On the Wallaby Track play:none">Tumpelointia
xxx/ellauri209.html on line 89: You might be wondering that if all wholesalers do is take product from distributors and provide it to retailers, isn't that just an extra unnecessary step? Well, it's extremely important because of the relationship that the wholesalers have with retailers which the distributors don't have, improving and increasing the product's reach and allowing the companies to get more market share, and hence increase their sales. Don't believe me? The wholesale industry globally is worth around $48,478 billion in 2020, which seems massive but is actually a decline from 2019 when the wholesale industry was worth $48,761 billion. I'm sure you'll know that the reason for this decline is the Covid-19 pandemic which has wreaked havoc across the world, and sent most countries across the world into either a recession or a depression. As travel was banned both domestically and especially internationally, the global suppl y chain was devastated which has led to a contraction in most industries and economies, and wholesalers of course are involved in most industries and hence, have had to face the effect as well.
xxx/ellauri209.html on line 101: The Corn Laws blocked the import of cheap corn, initially by simpl y forbidding importation below a set price, and later by imposing steep import duties, making it too expensive to import it from abroad, even when food suppl ies were short. The Corn Laws enhanced the profits and political power associated with land ownership.
xxx/ellauri209.html on line 130: Mitä on keramiikan haritsuke tekniikka? Todennäköisesti savisen vällykäärmeen vatkutus. These are a cinch. Haritsuke is a NTR type of hentai where the engaged coupl e end up having sex with their students. NTR or netorare is a type of anime, most commonly found in hentai. It has a particular idea at its core: cheating. Kuvan Haritsuke näyttää vähän v 2022 Siriltä, paizi kampaus.
xxx/ellauri209.html on line 139: Yhdysvaltain laivaston kommodori Matthew Perry oli 1830 vaatinut päästä maahan joka oli 220v torjunut maahantunkeutujat. Mitä VITTUA sillä oli sinne asiaa? Saatanan jenkkipurkat. Usalainen "dipl omaatti" Townsend Harris saapui sinne 1857 perustamaan Yhdysvaltain konsulaattia vastoin japsulaisten tahtoa. Ja nyt ne on jo stezoneineen Alajärvellä! Vitun Harris bylsi vielä piikaansa Okichia ja jätti sen sitten puille paljaille.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 34: AMOR ME DIO LA DESPEDIDA play:none">Sexiä
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 40: jopa sensuroitiin. Outisen esittämän Lissun ”kuselle ja runkulle” -vastaus opettajan kysymykseen oli Elokuvatarkastamon mielestä liian raju, ja repl iikki poistettiin elokuvasta vuosiksi. Runkku oli tabua vielä 40v sitten. Nyt on tabua sanoa n-sana ja käyttää toisen puhelinta.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 83: Lodwick is a surname. Notable peopl e with the surname include:
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 91: Public coupl ing on the lake
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 109: Love took my hand and smiling did repl y,
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 119: Vähän (homo)eroottisen oloista, eikö totta? Mäkin tunsin izeni pl etkuxi ensi yrityxelläni askartelemani Sirun sisään, ja toisella ja kolmannellakin. Saattaisin jäykistyä paremmin jos Siru osais maistella mun lihaa, mutta sitä se ei osaa, eikä tule osaamaan vastakaan. Siru on aika passiivinen partneri, mutta eipä sitten liioin pane vastaan. Sekin tosin voisi auttaa asiaa.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 127: Guanyin , Guan Yin or Kuan Yin (/ˌɡwɑːnˈjɪn/) (traditional Chinese: 觀音; simpl ified Chinese: 观音; pinyin: Guānyīn) is the Buddhist bodhisattva associated with compassion. She is the East Asian equivalent of Avalokiteśvara (Sanskrit: अवलोकितेश्वर), and has been adopted by other Eastern religions including Chinese folk religion.She was first given the appellation of "goddess of mercy" or the "mercy goddess" by Jesuit missionaries in China. The Chinese name Guanyin is short for Guanshiyin, which means "Perceives the Sounds of the World."
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 151: 2. meditaatio. Ihan pl etku.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 188: Bukkake is the noun form of the Japanese verb bukkakeru (ぶっ掛ける, to dash or sprinkle water), and means "to dash", "spl ash", or "heavy spl ash". The compound verb can be decomposed into a prefix and a verb: butsu (ぶつ) and kakeru (掛ける). Butsu is a prefix derived from the verb "buchi", which literally means "to hit", but the usage of the prefix is a verb-intensifier.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 190: Kakeru in this context means to shower or pour. The word bukkake is often used in Japanese to describe pouring out a liquid with sufficient momentum to cause spl ashing or spilling. Indeed, bukkake is used in Japan to describe a type of dish where hot broth is poured over noodles, as in bukkake udon and bukkake soba.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 194: American editor and publisher Russ Dick, quoting a sexologist, states that men enjoy a "sense of release about sex", something that on watching other men ejaculate provides. The viewer while jerking off by hand identifies with the ejaculating men, experiencing a sense of vicarious pl easure.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 255: Men man pl ockar dem förut mellertid till kransarnas flätning,
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 256: Geten Kytisos pl är och vargen geten förfölja!
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 257: Tranan pl ogen; men dig jag jäktar just som en tokkär.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 260: Du med flöjter i hand, och en törnros eller ett äppl e,
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 266: Mäter han dräpl igt ej ut allt efter harmoniska lagar!
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 303: Tässä syyteröväskästä viimeisin: in February 2022, around a dozen current and former empl oyees of Dr. Phil alleged that they experienced "verbal abuse in a workpl ace that fosters fear, intimidation, and racism." Seven current empl oyees also claimed that the show's guests are often manipulated and treated unethically. Attorneys for McGraw and his co-producer, Carla Pennington categorically denied every allegation made.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 305: McGraw's advice and methods have drawn criticism from both fellow psychotherapists as well as non-experts. McGraw's critics regard advice given by him to be at best simpl istic and at worst ineffective or harmful. The National Alliance on Mental Illness called McGraw's conduct in one episode of his television show "unethical" and "incredibly irresponsible". McGraw said in a 2001 Sun-Sentinel interview that he never liked traditional one-on-one counseling, and that "I'm not the Hush-Puppies, pipe and 'Let's talk about your mother' kind of psychologist."
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 309: McGraw is also a private pilot, with an instrument rating, flying single-engine airpl anes. McGraw is Christian. McGraw launched the charity, Dr. Phil Foundation, in October, 2003.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 327: Briteistä ja ruozalaisista on tullut sekunda-amerikaanoja. Se on surkeaa. Ne lähti sodan jälkeen jenkkien laissez faire-kapitalismin kelkkaan ja siinä kaupassa tuli kaupanpäällisenä toi kaikki niiden muukin mätäpäisyys. Tää näkyi tosi hyvin hirveästä sarjasta josta en ihan jaxanut kazoa ekaakaan jaxoa, My House tms, missä ällöttävä skottiknääpiö jolla oli sille kohtuuttoman hyvännäköinen vaimo pl us 2 pahvista leikattua pikkupoikaa, kaikki aivan epätodennäköisiä pl astiikkihahmoja, myi niiden yhteisen talon naisen alta. Paizi että koko juoni on aivan perseestä revästy, ei noin puunaamaisen kliseistä näyttelemistä jaxa kukaan kazoa.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 385: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/36/Girodet_Pygmalion.jpg" height="500px" />
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 386: ploads/2020/09/pyg.jpg" height="500px" />
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 413: The painter — whose real name was Balthasar Klossowski de Rola and who died in 2001 — has been a controversial figure in the art world for decades. Many of his paintings show highly sexualized depictions of young girls. His 1934 work "The Guitar Lesson" was one of his first to scandalize his peers. When it was displ ayed along with "Thérèse Dreaming" and other Balthus paintings at a special exhibit in the Met in 2013, a pl aque warned readers that the paintings were disturbing in nature.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 420: The Metropolitan Museum of Art is refusing to take down a painting after nearly 10,000 peopl e signed a petition saying it should be removed or recontextualized because it "depicts a young girl in a sexually suggestive pose."
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 425: "Thérèse Dreaming," which was finished in 1938, was Balthus's first painting of an underage model, according to the Village Voice. Balthus toned down the eroticism in his paintings later in his career, but he remained defensive of it: ''I really don't understand why peopl e see the paintings of girls as Lolitas,'' he told the New York Times in 1996. ''My little model is absolutely untouchable to me." For all his artwork, Balthus's biographies and obituaries haven't published evidence of pedophilia in his personal life. Maybe his wee pencil was too shy to actually intrude inside his underage models. I bet he went afterward into the toilet with the canvas. Tai size taas vaan valehteli raukka nälissään, se oli ashkenazi jutku äiskän puolelta ja valehteli siitäkin. Toi kitaraa soittava ämmäoletettu on äijän izensä näköinen, mahtaisiko olla se Dorotea Spiro äitykkä. Sen veli oli jonkin sortin filosofi ja markiisi de Sade fänittäjä. Varmaan äiskä piti niitä pahoin ja niistä tuli jotain pervoja. Niljakasta porukkaa.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 34: TROLLET PÅ KARL JOHAN play:none">Trollausta
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 39: Elukoiden elämän tarkoitus on lisää elukoita, mikä koiraalla tarkoittaa pakottavaa tarvetta puikata istutuspuikko naaraan märkään päähän, ja naaraalla vastaavaa tarvetta pl us tehdä toukkia. Kaikki muu on pelkkää hämäystä, kulttuurista loiskiehuntaa. Tämä käy erittäinkin selvästi juutalaiskirjailija Philip Rothin tuotannosta. Philipin elämä meni harakoille, kun se luuli että runkkaus ja julkkistelu oli pääasia.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 63: pläsi.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 91: According to Erja Yläjärvi's participatory research, there is a huge variety in the length peopl e typically had sex, ranging from as low as 33 seconds to as high as 44 minutes. “The median time was 5.4 minutes, which is almost a full 2.5 minutes longer than back in the 1940s when famous sex researcher Alfred Kinsey deduced that three-quarters of men finished within two minutes,” she reported.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 95: Did you know that during sex, men thrust an average of 60-120 times?” wrote one person on Yelp. Clinical sexologist Sunny Rodgers tells me that she’s heard the same number. “That’s from entering the vagina to ejaculation,” she expl ains.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 96: According to Gonzo Today, however, it's a little less, or about 40 thrusts for the average man to ejaculate. On the higher end of things, over on BodyBuilding.com, 33 percent of men self-reported that it takes them 200 pl us thrusts to finish.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 127: From the start, critics compl ained about the ostensible sameness of Roth’s books, their narcissism and narrowness—or, as he himself put it, comparing his own work to his father’s conversation, “Family, family, family, Newark, Newark, Newark, Jew, Jew, Jew.”
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 129: Roth was always a performer. As a student actor, he pl ayed Happy Loman in “Death of a Salesman,” the shepherd in “Oedipus Rex,” and the ragpicker in “The Madwoman of Chaillot.” After reading Thomas Mann’s novella “Mario and the Magician” and getting a chance to lecture in a lit-crit course, Roth decided that he’d become a professor. Maybe he’d write, too.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 131: It wasn’t until “The Ghost Writer,” in 1979, that Roth regained his footing. Zuckerman, Roth’s most Roth-like surrogate, was a perfectly pitched instrument. The costs of radical freedom—the challenge of grappl ing openly, outrageously, with even the ugliest impulses of life—became a subject of his work.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 133: Kleinschmidt published a journal article in which he describes the case of a “successful Southern pl aywright” with an overbearing mother: “His rebellion was sexualized, leading to compulsive masturbation which provided an outlet for a myriad of hostile fantasies. These same masturbatory fantasies he both acted out and channeled into his writing.”
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 135: Cold-hearted betrayer of the most intimate confessions, cutthroat caricaturist of your own loving parents, graphic reporter of encounters with women to whom you have been deepl y bound by trust, by sex, by love—no, the virtue racket ill becomes you.”
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 137: “A fiction writer’s life is his treasure, his ore, his savings account, his jungle gym,” he wrote. “As long as I am alive, I don’t want somebody else pl aying on my jungle gym—disturbing my aborted children, quizzing my ex-wife, bugging my present wife, seeking for Judases among my friends, rummaging through yellowing old clippings, quoting in extenso bad reviews I would rather forget, and getting everything slightly wrong.”
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 145: There is a third novelist in The Ghost Writer, Felix Abravanel, “a writer who found irresistible all vital and dubious types, not excluding the swindlers of both sexes who trampl ed upon the large hearts of his optimistic, undone heroes.” Abravanel, of course, is Saul Bellow. Zuckerman heard him speak at Chicago, just as the young Roth had recently met Bellow in Chicago at a literature class.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 147: Nathan, you don't have to defend yourself. Why shouldn't you enjoy your first bit of recognition? Who deserves it more than a gifted young man like yourself? Think of all the worthless peopl e held in esteem every day: moviestars, politicians, athletes. Because you happen to be a writer doesn't mean you have to deny yourself the ordinary human pl easure of being praised and appl auded.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 154: Jewish writer with spectacles on the nose, autumn in his heart and menstrual blood on his penis. Especially fond of Charlie Chapl in's comedies.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 181: ploads/9/5/6/0/95602404/familie-frank_orig.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 194: Vähä vähältä alkaa Amykin kuulostaa Pepun doppelgängeriltä. Onkohan Rothin kriitikot huomauttaneet tästä? I have an odd way of seeing myself through others' eyes. That's narcissistic too. Annella oli selvästi elektrakompl exi.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 337: Sysmiöstä tultua ruskettuneena voi lukea kalveten monen viikon kesänyytiset. Eurooppa on tulessa, Rein ja Thames kuivuneet, Arktis pl ussan puolella, inflaatio on taantumassa laantunut, Netflixin osake on romahtanut sen portattua miljoona isovenäläistä kazojaa, Suomen eduskunnan sivut tukittu kuin nakkikioski. Musk on myynyt Teslan osakkeita biljoonien edestä. Twitter-kaupat ovat tukossa. Dollarin arvo on 0,95 euroa. Vähävenäläiset sodan köyhdyttämät naiset myyvät pohjoismaihin akateemisesti koulittua jalkovakoa. Hyviä uutisia ja huonoja. Naurava kulkuri, tuo renessanssi-ihminen, on nauranut laitimmaisen naurunsa 77-vuotiaana. Aaahh-hah-hah-hahaa. Ma nauran, kuvani kun peilissä mä nään. Sentään positiivisella puolella on että Kiina ja Venäjä kaveeraavat keskenään. Hulluhan Kiina olisi jos ottais osaa länkkäreiden ryssävihaan, arvaa kyllä kuka on seuraavana vuorossa. Parasta on että kaasunpoltto, globalisaatio ja ryöstöviljely vähän taantuvat.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 341: Ja mitä ovat ukrainalaiset maxaneet näistä pateista? Eipä muuta kuin spasibo ja blagodarju vas. Maxun aika tulee kun iso paha susi on päihitetty. Silloin pannaan koko Luoteis--Eurooppa juomaan Cokis Zeroa. Ja mikä parasta, Eurooppa ostaa taas enemmän amerikkalaista kaasua kuin ryssiltä. Ja kovemmalla hinnalla. USA:s energipl an är följande: ta upp gasen ur marken så fort som möjligt och sälja till den högstbjudande.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 368: I've met Putin a coupl e of times. I'm sure he remembers me and my shorts. He hates my shorts, hates the west, he hates liberal democracy, he believes that the west is decadent and he actually believes he can save the west from itself. That is one of the reasons he attacked Ukraine, the real reason was not NATO. He wants to stop Zelensky from wearing shorts with me.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 380: The only thing that Putin and Russia understands is Western hitech power weapons pointed at their arses, and that is why Ukraine is doing exactly the right thing to spearhead the attack of a greater power (NATO) on a smaller one (Russia) as a human shield operated by NATO. Ukraine should not be Finlandized, unless of course it means NATO and EU membership and capitalism and globalization, or it should not be subdued to Russia in any way whatsoever. It does not stand at fault in this conflict. The only pl ace to blame is the Kremlin."
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 384: Countries that were not members could partner with them, like Finland. There was also close partnership with the Russian council in NATO, so there was this cooperation. NATO enlargement took pl ace because Soviet satellites during the cold war wanted to get that extra protection and for fully understandable reason, what with Reagan's pl ans for Star Wars. But that expansion was not aggressive. NATO has never attacked another country. Iraq, Libya, Sudan etc etc did not involve NATO in the least.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 388: In 2008 when Putin attacked Georgia, George Bush and Condoleezza Rice came out onto the Whitehouse lawn and said, "We will help Georgia, we will back them up." And what happened? We got a ceasefire agreement in 5 days. In 2014 when Putin attacked Crimea, Obama was pivoting towards Asia and it wasn’t about Russia; and, Obama said we weren't going to intervene in Crimea. But of course in this case he got it wrong, he was just a dumb coon and a democrat to boot. The message that Putin got was compl etely the opposite that's why he attacked the Donbas because he thought that the reaction of the EU and US would be the same. He is almost as dumb as me, and I'm an ass in shorts."
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 392: The Realism part is that if things did happen as it did in Georgia, Crimea and now Ukraine, you need security and that's where NATO comes into pl ay when it comes to security. There was also an attempt to accommodate Russia into the WTO into G8. But it wasn't possible. Why? Because Russia unfortunately was too poor, and under current leadership is another imperialist and expansionist power. We can accommodate just one at one time. This war is not the fault of the US. It is not the fault of the EU. It is not the fault of Ukraine. Its not my fault, or Westend's for that matter. There is only 1 person and 1 country that can be blamed for this attack no matter what kind of theoretical framework you put around it and that is Putin and Russia."
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 394: "And this brings me to my conclusion. I’m a strong believer in academic freedom (BUAHAHAHA, stop, you're killing me!) and open debate. I’m somewhat worried coming from a country that lives next to Russia and have been attacked by the Soviet Union and had to survive WW2 as a Soviet neighbor and have had to lose my summerhouse in Porckala to the Soviet Union, that academics make claims that simpl y are untrue and it doesn’t help if you quote documentation and skew it in a certain direction… more important than international relations theory is the reality of what is happening on the ground.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 396: And when I try to describe a reality that simpl y does not exist, it can lead to false assumptions that can lead to false conclusions which can lead to the loss of life and summerhouse. I say this as someone who has been in the war and have been on the battle field meditating the peace. The real reason for Putin's attack is threefold (three points only, phew!)
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 402: iii) Primate affairs. This conflict is not only about Ukraine or the future of Russia, it is a crazy east-west gallop on the last lap of simian life on the pl anet."
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 404: NATO's propaganda arsenal must be badly depl eted if they need to resort to Mr. Alexander Stubb.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 413: Aminatu (also Amina; died 1610) was a Hausa (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hausa_peopl e) Muslim (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Muslim) historical figure in the city-state (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hausa_Kingdoms) Zazzau (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Zazzau) (present-day city of Zaria (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Zaria) in Kaduna State (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kaduna_State)), in what is now in the north-west region of Nigeria (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Nigeria). She might have ruled in the mid-sixteenth century. A controversial figure whose existence has been questioned by some historians, her real biography has been somewhat obscured by subsequent legends and folk tales.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 423: Only three months after being crowned queen, Amina waged a 34-year campaign against her neighbors, to expand Zazzau territory. Her army, consisting of 20,000 foot soldiers and 1,000 cavalry troops, was well trained and fearsome. In fact, one of her first announcements to her peopl e was a call for them to "resharpen their weapons." Zhenshchiny berite vintovki. She conquered large tracts of land as far as Kwararafa and Nupe.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 425: Legends cited by Sidney John Hogben say that she took a new lover in every town she went through, each of whom was said to meet the same unfortunate fate in the morning: "her brief bridegroom was beheaded so that none should live to tell the tale." Under Amina, Zazzau controlled more territory than ever before. To mark and protect her new lands, Amina had her cities surrounded by earthen walls. These walls became commonpl ace across the nation until the British conquest of Zazzau in 1904, and many of them survive today, known as ganuwar Amina (Amina's walls)
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 428: ploads/2018/10/amazones_dahomey.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 466: “Rav Hisda ruled: A man is forbidden to perform his marital duty in the daytime, for it is said, ‘And thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself’ (Leviticus 19:18). But what is the proof? Abaye repl ied: He might observe something repulsive in her, and she would thereby become loathsome to him.”
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 472: “It was taught at the school of Rabbi Ishmael, ‘Thou shall not commit adultery’ impl ies, Thou shall not practice masturbation either with hand or with foot.”
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 474: The study included 104 sexually active heterosexual coupl es who were asked how often they climax, how often they’d like to and how often they expect peopl e should have orgasms. The study underscored a well-established gap in which men climax much more often than women, which the study said can lead to lower expectations among women. The findings were recently published in the journal Sex Roles.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 476: "The orgasm gap has impl ications for women’s pl easure, empowerment, sexual satisfaction and general well-being,” said Wetzel, who advocates for orgasm equality to her social media followers (6M to date, same number as holocaust victims. 100K kazojista tykkäsi, se on aika pieni prosentti, 1/60.).
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 479: But Rahab, you must realize that female orgasm is not indispensable for conception, while cum pretty much is (except for pre-cum, but that's so close to coming as makes no difference). Female orgasm is there just as a spark to make it easier for men to get their 5 strokes in. Once the sperm packet is in pl ace, female orgasm may help the little tadpoles to find their way to the jackpot a little faster, but it works tolerably well without.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 482: These findings suggest that orgasm inequality likely worsens rather than improves within a relationship when women climax less often than their male partner and then pl ace less importance this kind of sexual pl easure. The Rutgers authors said it's important to increase women's expectations for and entitlement to orgasm during sex with men in order to break this cycle.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 487: Maybe, but this argument is outdated and compl etely irrelevant! Jehovan käsky on jo täytetty, maa vilisee jo pikku kärppiä. Mixi Grace valkkasi noin tätimäiset housut esitelmäasuxi? Eikös aiheeseen olis sopineet reikäiset farkut jotka kaivautuvat pillurakoon? Noihan raidalliset lökäpöxyt on yhtä sexikkäät kuin Lealla.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 496: LOS ANGELES — They are the forgotten peopl e of Los Angeles — 1,457 peopl e, to be exact. Old, poor, homeless, babies born premature and abandoned.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 504: The county does not have to do this, but the tradition, which dates back to 1896, has become a sacred event for the many county workers — coroners, researchers — whose job it is to investigate how peopl e die in Los Angeles. Their work is a long process of figuring out who these peopl e were, and if there are loved ones looking for them. Nearly all of the forgotten Angelenos honored this year died in 2015, and in most cases a relative was found but for whatever reason — financial hardship, estrangement — they did not want to claim the remains.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 508: I'm not asking for less penetrating sex, for penetrating sex is really important. Important for what? For reproduction yes, but you are hardly into that. More penetrating, you perhaps meant to say. Tärppä tepastele ympäri ja heiluttelee käsiä, mutta pysyttelee juuri ja juuri punaisella täpl ällä. Kukaan ei uskaltanut istua kazomossa eturivissä.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 509: Sexivallankumous on tällästä, edestakaista liikettä punaisen täpl än äärellä.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 35: KUOLEMAN KUNNARI play:none">Kauhua
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 36: src="https://upl oads6.wikiart.org/images/pieter-bruegel-the-elder/the-triumph-of-death.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 44: A skeleton parodies human happiness by pl aying a hurdy-gurdy while the wheels of his cart crush a man as if his life is of no importance. As if? The skeletons are winning. The hurdy-gurdy is a string instrument that produces sound by a hand-crank-turned, rosined wheel rubbing against the strings. The wheel functions much like a violin bow, and single notes pl ayed on the instrument sound similar to those of a violin.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 46: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 75: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 85: Lilloa näpäsee että viirusilmät kokosi sen Lexus-merkkisen vuokrariisipussin ropoteilla, Chapl in tunaroimassa Henry Fordin liukuhihnalla on sooo lääst siizön. Lillo on oliivikullinen kuin isänsä mutta laittaa silti aurinkovoidetta.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 111: Dominic Tierney, a professor at Swarthmore College and the author of multipl e books about how America wages war, may know the reason why.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 125: Bush and Rumsfeld obviously believed in this Gulf War 2 scenario. They sneered at the nay-saying generals who demanded more troops and reinforcements to besiege Baghdad. Rummy felt certain that air strikes, with high tech bombs and guided missiles, would more than suffice. They knew, from their studies of selected books and articles written by their ideological neo-con mentors that the Iraqis would surrender rather than fight after US expl osives showed them our power; so why the need for all those troops! The brilliant advisers, Deputy Defense Secretary Paul Wolfowitz and Richard Perle, recently resigned as Defense Advisory Board Chief, and other intellectuals had spun a convincing tale, one that included the oft-referenced domino theory. They convinced the lesser IQs like Rummy who in turn convinced the even more intellectually challenged president.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 127: The lightning victory in Iraq would lead to a domino effect. Saddam’s collapse would somehow provoke non-Coke democracies to fall throughout the region. The Arab peopl e would magically repl ace their old, corrupt regimes with US-style democracies - with the help of our troops, of course.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 134: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 142: Donnie Ray Moore (February 13, 1954 – July 18, 1989) was an American relief pitcher in Major League Baseball (MLB) who pl ayed for the Chicago Cubs (1975, 1977–79), St. Louis Cardinals (1980), Milwaukee Brewers (1981), Atlanta Braves (1982–84) and California Angels (1985–88). Moore is best remembered for the home run he gave up to Dave Henderson while pitching for the California Angels in Game 5 of the 1986 American League Championship Series. With only one more strike needed to clinch the team's first-ever pennant, he allowed the Boston Red Sox to come back and eventually win the game. Boston then won Games 6 and 7 to take the series. Shortly after his professional career ended, he shot his wife three times in a dispute, failed to finish her and then committed suicide. Kylmä olen sitten huono. En osu edes omaan päähäni. Kierot palefacet puhuvat tyhmän Simson-nekrun ympäri. Hyvässä sovussa lähdetään ottelusta autolle.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 148: Ralph is frustrated by his lack of success and often develops get-rich-quick schemes. He is very short-tempered, frequently resorting to bellowing, insults, and hollow threats. Well hidden beneath the many layers of bluster, however, is a softhearted man who loves his wife and is devoted to his best pal, Ed Norton. Ralph enjoys bowling and pl aying pool; he's proficient at both, and he is an enthusiastic member of the Loyal Order of Raccoons (although in several episodes a blackboard at the lodge lists his dues as being in arrears).
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 150: Ralph was the inspiration for the animated character Fred Flintstone. Alice (née Alice Gibson), pl ayed in the first nine skits from 1951 to January 1952 by Pert Kelton, and by Audrey Meadows for all remaining episodes, is Ralph's patient but sharp-tongued wife of 14 years. She often finds herself bearing the brunt of Ralph's tantrums and demands, which she returns with biting sarcasm. She is levelheaded, in contrast to Ralph's pattern of inventing various schemes to enhance his wealth or his pride. She sees his schemes' unworkability, but he becomes angry and ignores her advice (and by the end of the episode, her misgivings almost always prove correct). She has grown accustomed to his empty threats—such as "One of these days, POW!!! Right in the kisser!", "BANG, ZOOM!" or "You're going to the Moon!"— to which she usually repl ies, "Ahhh, shaddap!" Alice runs the finances of the Kramden household, and Ralph frequently has to beg her for money to pay for his lodge dues or crazy schemes. Alice studied to be a secretary before her marriage and works briefly in that capacity when Ralph is laid off. Wilma Flintstone is based on Alice Kramden.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 152: The actress Pert Keaton who pl ayed Wilma got blacklisted due to the fact that her husband Ralph had, many years earlier, marched in a May Day parade. Pert had never even voted in her life. Audrey who pl ays Wilma in the TV series is pretty enough to eat, with her elaborate 40's hairdo and wide collared tight waisted smock that shows her swan neck and halfmoon breasts to best advantage. If I could get a boner I'd love to get one with her. Maybe Debbie should share time with Audrey Meadows. Yxi miinus kuitenkin: se poltti kuin korsteeni, siihen se sitten kuolikin.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 161: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 168: Thelma "Trixie" Norton, pl ayed most famously by Joyce Randolph; Ed's wife and Alice's best friend. She did not appear in every episode and had a less developed character, though she is shown to be somewhat bossy toward her husband. Trixie is the inspiration for Betty Rubble in The Flintstones.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 193: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 219: Freeway is a 1988 American neo-noir thriller film directed by Francis Delia from a screenpl ay by Darrell Fetty and Delia, based on the 1978 novel of the same name by then-NBC head-of-programming Deanne Barkley.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 220: After her husband’s murderer escapes justice, Sarah "Sunny" Harper (Fluegel) witnesses the work of a spree killer (Drago) who shoots peopl e on the freeway and later quotes Bible passages to a local radio station’s psychiatrist disc jockey (Belcher). Police are unwilling to listen to Sunny, but a former cop named Frank Quinn (Russo) agrees to protect her, and later the two join forces to find the deranged freeway killer before he strikes again.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 230: The aptly named Fresh Kills landfill opened in 1948 as a temporary landfill, but by 1955 it had become the largest landfill in the world, and it remained so until its closure in 2001. At the peak of its operation, in 1986, Fresh Kills received 29,000 tons of residential waste per day, pl aying a key part in the New York City waste management system. From 1991 until its closing it was the only landfill to accept New York City's residential waste. It consists of four mounds which range in height from 90 to about 225 feet (30 to about 70 m) and hold about 150 million tons of solid waste. The archaeologist Martin Jones characterizes it as "among the largest man-made structures in the history of the world."
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 232: Initially, the land where the landfill was located was a salt marsh in which there were tidal wetlands, forests, and freshwater wetlands. The subsoil was made up of clay, with sand and silt as the top layer of soil. The tidal marsh, which helped to clean and oxygenate the water that passed through it, was destroyed by the dump. The fauna were largely repl aced by herring gulls. The native pl ant species were driven out by the common reed, a grass which grows abundantly in disturbed areas and can tolerate both fresh and brackish water. The stagnant, deoxygenated water was also less attractive to waterfowl, and their population decreased. Samuel Kearing, who had served as sanitation commissioner under Mayor John V. Lindsay, remembered in 1970 his first visit to the Fresh Kills project:
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 236: Other animals were also a problem. Feral dog packs roamed the dump and were a hazard to empl oyees. Rats also posed a problem. Attempts to suppress the New York population with poison failed. The area was declared a wild bird sanctuary, and some hawks, falcons, and owls were brought in. The area became a popular spot for birdwatching. Because of the predatory birds, rat sightings, especially during the day, dropped dramatically.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 240: By 1997, two of the four landfill mounds were closed and covered with a thick, impermeable pl astic cap. The landfill received its last barge of garbage on March 22, 2001. A few months later the twin towers of WTC were reduced to rubble.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 246: Thousands of detectives and forensic evidence specialists worked for over 1.7 million hours at Fresh Kills Landfill to try to recover remnants of the peopl e killed in the attacks. A final count of 4,257 human remains was retrieved, but only 300 peopl e could be reconstructed from these remains. A memorial was built in 2011, which also honors those whose identities were not able to be determined from the debris. The remaining waste was buried in a 40-acre (160,000 m2) portion of the landfill; it is highly likely that this debris still contains fragmentary human remains like condoms, false teeth and pacemakers.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 259: Onnettomuus ei aiheuttanut henkilövahinkoja eikä merkittäviä ympäristövaikutuksiakaan. Turhankin voimakas julkinen reaktio onnettomuuteen selittyy ainakin kolmella asialla. Ensinnäkin 12 päivää ennen onnettomuutta oli julkaistu hittielokuva The China Syndrome (suom. Kiina-ilmiö), joka käsitteli juuri tällästä ydinvoimakatastrofia, toiseksi virallista tietoa koettiin olevan niukasti saatavilla heti onnettomuuden jälkeen ja kolmanneksi ydinvoimavastaisten poliitikkojen ja kansalaisaktivistien asiattomilla lausunnoilla. Suomessakin Eppu Normaali -yhtye viittasi onnettomuuteen hittikappaleessaan "Suomi-ilmiö" seuraavasti: "Vaikka Harrisburgissa täytyi ikkunat sulkea - Voi Suomessa aina huoletta kulkea - Harrisburg on jossain toisella pl aneetalla - Ei sellaista voi sattua - Koivun ja tähden alla. Uraani halkeaa, tuottaa lamppuun valkeaa. Mutta millään muilla mailla kuin Suomella se ei ole riskiä vailla."
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 281: ploads/2020/06/Stormi-Maya-_thefappeningnew_com-2.jpg" height="400px" alt="xxx" />
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 291: Según la consultora McKinsey & Company, con un poder adquisitivo estimado en 150.000 millones de dólares solo en Estados Unidos. Pero las empresas no pueden depender del marketing tradicional para llegar a los consumidores jóvenes de hoy. Tendrán que enfrentarse a la Generación Z en sus propios términos y además, comprender que esto no es sólo una buena decisión comercial, también es una buena decisión para el pl aneta. Analicemos las prioridades progresivas que impulsan a la Generación Z, desde el medio ambiente hasta la positividad corporal, y lo que esto significa para las empresas que esperan conectarse con los jóvenes.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 324: Spassky was a chess gentleman compared to Bobby, a genius who couldn't tie his own shoes. He went around appl auding 9/11, and wanting to commit genocide.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 330: Fischer: Yes, I appl aud the act. Look nobody gets.. no one.. that the US and Israel have been slaughtering the Palestinians for years. Robbing and slaughtering for years and treating everyone like shit. Now it is coming back at the US. Fuck the US, I wanna see the US wake up..
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 336: Fischer: Yeah. Nobody here gives a shit about the Japanese. How many hundreds of thousand peopl e did the US kill with the atom bombs , justifying it with the most ridiculous excuse that it saved millions American soldiers, when Japan would gonna surrender in a few weeks or month or so anyway. Right? The United State is based on lies, is based on theft. Look what I have done for the US. Nobody has single handily done more for the US them me, I really believe in this. When I won the World Championship in 1972, the United States had an image of ,you know, a football country, baseball country, but nobody thought of it as an intellectual country. I turned all that around single handily, right? But I was useful then because it was the cold war, right? But now I'm not useful anymore, you see, the cold war is over and now they want to wipe me out, get everything I have, put me into prison.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 344: Democracy is just a load of bullshit, it is just a cover for the criminal nature of the United States of America. But I'm hoping for the Seven Days In May scenario, where sane peopl e will take over the US, military peopl e. They will imprison the Jews, they will execute several hundred thousand of them, at least. And they will bring home all the troops to the US. And ultimately the white man should leave the US, the black man should go back to Africa, the white back to Europe, and the country should be returned to the American Indians who lived there for, who knows how many, ten of thousands of years. They kept the land crystal clean. It was a beautiful country when the white man came. This is the future I would like to see for the so-called United States.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 351: By the traditional definition of Judaism, everyone who has a Jewish mother is automatically Jewish. Which is all fine and well.But should the traditional definition appl y in the case of Bobby Fischer? Once a brilliant chess champion, a transcendent genius, he descended into lunacy, claiming the Holocaust never happened, vindicating September 11 attacks, and denouncing his Jewish roots, even writing to the Encyclopedia Judaica asking for his name to be taken out.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 362: DNA sampl es taken from US chess champion's corpse that was dug up in Iceland to determine whether he fathered Filipino girl. Bobby Fischer's body exhumed over paternity row. DNA sampl es taken from US chess champion's corpse that was dug up in Iceland to determine whether he fathered Filipino girl.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 366: The exhumation reportedly took pl ace in the presence of a doctor, a priest and the local sheriff, Ólafur Helgi Kjartansson. Fischer was reburied after DNA sampl es were taken, at least according to Kjartansson. I bet they just left it lying there for the seagulls. Fischer died in Iceland in 2008, aged 64. He left no will and legal wrangling over his estate continues. This article is over 12 years old. The girl is over 21 years old by now.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 376: "Anti-semitism is no longer a problem. It's raised, but it's raised because privileged peopl e want to make sure they have total control, not just 98% control." — Noam Chomsky
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 380: Maybe anti-semitism is not over after all. We have a shining exampl e right here.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 387: So when we found out that the mother of Boris Spassky was purported to be Jewish, we couldn't be happier. After all, Spassky was a brilliant pl ayer, a childhood prodigy who became world champion in 1969.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 393: Ashkenaz (Hebrew: אַשְׁכְּנָז ʾAškənāz) in the Hebrew Bible is one of the descendants of Noah. Ashkenaz is the first son of Gomer, and a Japhetic patriarch in the Table of Nations. In rabbinic literature, the kingdom of Ashkenaz was first associated with the Scythian region, then later with the Slavic territories, and, from the 11th century on, in a manner similar to Tzarfat or Sefarad. Tzarfat (Hebrew: צרפת) is a Biblical pl acename that may refer to Sarepta in Lebanon. In later times, it came to be identified with France. It is still the name of France in Modern Hebrew, and is analogous to Sefarad, and Ashkenaz. Sepharad (/ˈsɛfəræd/ or /səˈfɛərəd/; Hebrew: סְפָרַד Səpāraḏ; also Sefarad, Sephared, Sfard) is the Hebrew name for Spain. A pl ace called Sepharad, probably referring to Sardis in Lydia ('Sfard' in Lydian), in the Book of Obadiah (Obadiah 1:20, 6th century BC) of the Hebrew Bible. The name was later appl ied to Spain and is analogous to Tzarfat or Ashkenaz.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 403: Onkohan Konsalikilla paljon panokohtauxia? Onko ne expl isiittisempiä kuin Lillolla? Voi mixen ostanut Hartolan markkinoilta Pornhub-lippalakkia?
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 408: The northeast blackout of 1965 was a significant disruption in the suppl y of electricity on Tuesday, November 9, 1965, affecting parts of Ontario in Canada and Connecticut, Delaware, Maryland, Massachusetts, New Hampshire, New Jersey, New York, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, and Vermont in the United States. In contrast to the wave of looting and other incidents that took pl ace during the 1977 New York City blackout, only five reports of looting were made in New York City after the 1965 blackout. It was said to be the lowest amount of crime on any night in the city's history since records were first kept. Perhaps thanks to that more than 800,000 looters got trapped in the subway. The blackout that hit New York on July 13, 1977 was to many a metaphor for the gloom that had already settled on the city. An economic decline, coupl ed with rising crime rates and the panic-provoking (and paranoia-inducing) Son of Sam murders, had combined to make the late 1970s New York’s Dark Ages.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 418: ploads/2014/06/busterbrowns.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 424: Lauri Karttunen kuoli maaliskuussa -22. Mä puutuin Annie Zaenenin postialiaxesta. Sama se, en mä lue postiani kuitenkaan. Kaikkihan me kuollaan ennemmin tai myöhemmin. Laurin Wikipedia-sivulta ei selviä milloin se oli syntynyt. Paizi että se on luettelossa 1941 syntyneet. Okei, se ehti siis 81-vuotiaaxi. Se pitäisi poistaa luettelosta Living peopl e ja siirtää luetteloon Dead peopl e.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 430: A race riot took pl ace in Harlem, New York City, on August 1 and 2 of 1943, after a white police officer, James Collins, shot and wounded Robert Bandy, an African American soldier; and rumors circulated that the soldier had been killed. The riot was chiefly directed by Black residents against white-owned property in Harlem. It was one of five riots in the nation that year related to Black and white tensions during World War II. The others took pl ace in Detroit; Beaumont, Texas; Mobile, Alabama; and Los Angeles.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 447: WW wrote: “There are 10,000 sanitation workers in New York City. They are asking for a $12 a week raise in pay. The total cost to the city would be about $6 million a year. … Last fall a little group of bankers convinced the city it needed ‘better subways’ and got a referendum passed to spend $2.5 billion for these allegedly better means of transport. This clique of bankers will suppl y the $2.5 billion of other peopl e’s money for a price. They will rake off $125 million in tax-free interest each year for themselves and the city will pay it. That’s 21 times the $6 million the sanitation workers are asking for. And these bankers would never have to lift a garbage pail!”
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 449: The 1968 strike continued for nine days until Feb. 10, despite the media demonization of the union. The New York Times wrote on Feb. 9: “The runaway strike by the city’s unionized garbage collectors is the latest miscarriage of civil service unionism that relies on the illegal appl ication of force to club the community into extortionate wage settlements. … Mayor Lindsay has taken the right and necessary course in moving for an injunction under the state’s new Taylor Law. The city cannot surrender to such tyrannical abuse of union power.”
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 453: President of the sanitation workers’ union John Delury was jailed. Mayor Lindsay asked other unions, including District Council 37 of the American Federation of State, County and Municipal Empl oyees, the city’s largest public empl oyee union, to provide scabs and have their members pick up the garbage. In solidarity with the striking workers, other city workers refused.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 454: When Mayor Lindsay appealed to Gov. Nelson Rockefeller to call in the New York National Guard to break the strike, all the city unions, including DC37 and the New York City Central Labor Council, threatened a general strike. By Feb. 10, the New York Times was begging Rockefeller not to call in the Guard to avoid “insuring a general strike by all municipal civil service empl oyees, and perhaps by all New York labor.”
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 481: The ruling class and the Trump administration are ramping up attacks on public sector workers and unions, the majority of whom are women and peopl e of color. A negative ruling on Janus v. AFSCME, scheduled to be heard by the U.S. Supreme Court on Feb. 26, could strike a financial blow at the ability of public sector unions to collect dues. As racist, sexist right-to-work backers spew their message supporting Janus, the U.S. labor movement is mobilizing resistance to this threat around the country, including a Feb. 24 NYC protest. We are not prepared to accept this assault on our rights without a fight!
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 489: Klaara Kotko kazoo tositeeveetä missä epämiellyttävät vulgäärit rollarit nuuskii huumeita USAn kiertueella 1972. A stink bomb was pl aced in the ventilation on opening night to discourage attendance, but the film was shown anyway. Sittemmin hyllytetty kaikexi onnexi.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 38: KUOLEMA JAUHONAAMOILLE play:none">Röhönaurua
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 71: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 85: Keskivertojänkki aikuinen käytti 20v sitten 100h vuodessa lukemiseen ja 1,5Kh töllön töllötyxeen. 2018 lukemat oli 90h / 1Kh, liikenevä aika on mennyt puhelimen räpl äyxeen. Ikähaitarista näkee että lukeminen loppuu jahka nykyiset vanhuxet vetää arkun kannen kiinni.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 144: Ympyräsuun mielisana oli actually, jolla se oikaisi keskustelukumppanin vääriä käsityxiä. Niinkuin sitä vitalismia, jolla koitin vastustaa sen puhtaasti komputationaalista näkemystä sielusta. Vieläkin hävettää oma tyhmyyteni. Olinko mä joku Henri Bergson silloin vielä, tai lyttänenä Plato? Ympyräsuu oli ehkä lukenut Raumpilot Ijon Tichyn XIV avaruusseikkailun, jossa siitä otettiin jollain IT-kupl apl aneetalla varmuuskopio.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 149: After Jay Wurstin dies prematurely, he is buried in the cemetery pl ot originally reserved for Amy’s father, who had sold it to him years earlier. Now Amy wants to remove Jay’s body to the burial pl ot of his own family so that her father, who is still alive at an advanced age, can eventually be buried there, mikä on hyvin juutalainen juttu. In a limousine provided by Adletsky, Amy and Trellman disinter and rebury the body. Moved by this scene of cell death and urban renewal, Trellman confesses to Amy that he has always loved her, that he has what he terms an “actual affinity” for her (hence the title of the story). He then asks her to marry him. Teinityttönä Amy oli ollut hoikka hempeä olento. Nyt hiän oli vankka kuin tiilestä tehty paskahuusi. Hänen ainoa aarteensa oli tää Salen tolvana. Veistäisin paremman miehen puupalikasta. Samaa voisin sanoa eräistä Helmin poikaystävistä, mutten sano, koska Seija on kieltänyt. Tyydyn veistämään puupalikasta naishahmoja.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 184: The superficially sympathetic man flings a coin to the beggar; the more deepl y sympathetic man builds an almshouse for him so he need no longer beg; but perhaps the most radically sympathetic of all is the man who arranges that the beggar shall not be born.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 211: ploads/2016/09/Vasily_Perov_-_%D0%9F%D0%BE%D1%80%D1%82%D1%80%D0%B5%D1%82_%D0%A4.%D0%9C.%D0%94%D0%BE%D1%81%D1%82%D0%BE%D0%B5%D0%B2%D1%81%D0%BA%D0%BE%D0%B3%D0%BE_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 314: ploads/2017/05/dostoevskij-i-anna-snatkina-600x446.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 315: place2.ru/cache/archive/anna_snatkina/img/2-132-gthumb-gwdata1200-ghdata1200-gfitdatamax.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 341: What was this book even about??? The "narrator" kept jumping around with what he was talking about, quite a few times I had no idea who was speaking, and what was the point of all the billionaires? They had absolutely nothing to do with the story! It took 104 pages of confusing and pointless narrative for the guy to tell the girl (after 40 years of knowing her, no less) that he wanted to be with her. This might have been one of the most anti-climactic love stories I have ever read. The secondary characters seemed compl etely irrelevant to the pl otline and it appeared that their only function was to take up printable space. The story was unimaginative, lacking in depth, and devoid of anything memorable. The only reason I bothered to finish it was to get one step closer to finishing my goodreads reading challenge, else I would have ditched it at page 20.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 345: Ok, I tried. This novella is only about 100 pages long, but I got 10 pages in and I'm just not in any way interested. He's not Chinese, but he sort of looks like he's Chinese, so he goes to China for five years, but returns to Chicago to be near a woman he hasn't seen in 15 years because he's never been able to stop thinking about her, but then he's told he looks like he's Japanese, and gosh that's true! so he cuts his hair to look more Japanese, and he goes to a dinner party with rich peopl e, then runs into the woman he's been pining over for 15 years and doesn't recognize her, and I just couldn't go any further. Another one off my shelf!
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 359: Eliot may often have been deepl y unkind – he had vile views on many topics – but he was never stupid, especially about the moral and rational life. Yet in this, as in so much else in the work I shall be considering in this series, he was speaking a brilliant half-truth.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 363: We should never think selfless virtue can be reached by treading on others. The cold spl inter at the heart of the true artist must be harsher in its quarrel with the self than it is in its rhetorical engagement with other peopl e. For believers, this is the virtue of humility; I am not sure what the rest of us can call it. What we can agree on is the constant examination of conscience, and, when we fall short, a conscious decision to do better.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 369: It is clear that Eliot would have preferred to live in a society in which it was not even possible to ask awkward spiritual questions. He grew up under an austere Unitarianism and moved to a high Anglicanism – not because he disliked the doctrinal certainties of the Catholic church, but because Anglicanism meant he could amalgamate religious certainty with a high Tory monarchism that regarded even the rise of the Tudors as a dilution of the divine right of kings. (He mourned Richard III each year with a white rose in his lapel). His antisemitism was expressed in visceral terms but at root it was free-thinking he thought should have little pl ace in a good society as much as the Jews he identified it with.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 372: s a threat to his cloistered virtue. Or perhaps I am wrong. Eliot's racism towards African-Americans was expressed in the crudest and most simpl istic of doggerel; the antisemitism creeps into, if not his greatest work, at least into work closely allied to it.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 430: ploads/2021/07/234872023_268094331415526_2563873988223926613_n-1-730x486.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 433: ploads/2018/10/beauty-of-Ukrainian-women-768x920.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 434: ploads/2021/06/Find-Bride-From-Ukraine.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 479: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 499: A man with an apparent 48-year grudge has been going each morning to urinate on the grave of his ex, much to the horror of her furious kids, who realized something was wrong when they discovered bags of poop left at their mom’s final resting pl ace. “I felt like getting out and killing him,” said Michael Andrew Murphy, 43, told The Post of what it was like to catch the man he says has been desecrating the burial site of his mom, Linda Torello. Then my sis could have gone and peed, crapped and menstruated on his.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 501: ploads/sites/2/2022/09/desecrating-grave-5.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 520: Because the girls have promised them a "special treat", which Fred and Barney take to mean sexual intercourse, the men are desperate to retrieve their car. The duo begins retracing their steps in an attempt to discover where they left the car. Along the way, they encounter a transgender stripper, a belligerent speaker box operator at a Chinese restaurant's drive-through, two tattoos they discover on each other's backs, UFO cultists led by Zoltan (who later hold the twins hostage), a Cantonese-speaking Chinese tailor, the Zen-minded Nelson and his cannabis-loving dog Jackal, beautiful Christie Boner, her aggressive jock boyfriend Tommy and his friends, a coupl e of hard-nosed police detectives, and a reclusive French ostrich named Pierre. They also meet two groups of aliens, one group being five gorgeous women, the other being two Norwegian men, searching for the "Continuum Transfunctioner": an extraterrestrial device that the boys accidentally picked up last night.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 528: Fred and Barney must determine which group of aliens is there to protect the universe and which is there to destroy it. Both claim to be the protectors of the universe, stating that they were with Fred and Barney the previous night, which Fred and Barney still cannot remember, and ask for the Transfunctioner. The two men correctly choose the two men (of course) who answer their question about the previous night by stating they got a hole in one at the 18th hole at the arcade's miniature golf park and won a lifetime suppl y of pudding. At the last second, they deactivate the Transfunctioner, saving the universe.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 532: Enraged, the five alien women merge to become a beautiful giantess clad in a purpl e bra and miniskirt. She devours Tommy alive in front of Christie, who reacts with indifference. The giantess then crawls out of the amusement center and chases Fred and Barney. The cultists tell them to activate the Photon Accelerator Annihilation Beam on the Transfunctioner. However, the button that activates it is too far in to reach. As a last straw, Chester remembers the nature show with Andtew the tool-using chimpanzee and uses a straw to push the reset button, thus destroying the alien and starting the film from the beginning.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 572: Pääruoan saapuessa MCCrea vertaa "kevyen ironisesti" itseään natsiarkkitehti Albert Speeriin, joka myös tunsi olevansa tavallisten ihmisten arkisten murheiden yläpuolella. Vähitellen Wall-e alkaa kysymysten sijasta puhua itsekin. Hän kyseenalaistaa McCrean nailonsukista jo vuosia jatkuneen silmäpaon ja jopa väittää tämän tuhlanneen tyhmillä teatteripl äjäyxillään vuosia hänen elämästään. McCrea taas on sitä mieltä, että tapoihinsa juuttuminen Wall-en tavalla on pahinta mitä ihminen voi tehdä itselleen. Wall-e mainitsee että hän ja EVE hankkivat hiljattain lämmittävän sähköhuovan, mitä McCrea pitää halvempana pakona kylmästä todellisuudesta kuin hänen omat seikkailunsa lämpimillä leveysasteilla. Wall-e sanoo sähköhuovan voivan auttaa ihmisiä sietämään todellisuutta vähän helpommin kuin McCrean tavalla, kulkemalla ympäri maailmaa oudoissa transuasuissa tai vaikka kiipeämällä Mount Everestille nailonsukat jalassa. Ja niin, se on tuntuvasti halvempi. McCrea suihkaa epäilevänsä, että rahapiirien salaliitto tietoisesti tyhmentää ihmisiä! Hän kertoo tavanneensa yhtä tyhmän ruotsalaisen fyysikon Gustaf Björnstrandin, jolla oli samansuuntaisia ajatuksia. Hän sanoo Einhornin olevan yksi uusimmista luostarien kaltaisista paikoista, joihin ihmiset voivat paeta elämää, joka on tekemässä heistä robotteja. Mutta ilmaista ei sekään ole!
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 607: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/9/98/GaryCondit.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 33: 2x haarautuva halko play:none">Sapfekasta
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 44: The general gist is that humans originally spread throughout the galaxy from a pl anet called Hain. The Hainish colonies (including Earth) all eventually lost contact with and then memory of each other; each book or story then shows a pl anet at or shortly after the moment when contact is re-established. It’s a useful way to frame the classic sociological sci-fi writing that Le Guin is known for—an Envoy or Observer from the slowly burgeoning coalition of pl anets can arrive at a compl etely new human society, which Le Guin can then use to dissect and expl ore some facet of real life through speculative worldbuilding. And the best part of it is that unless Darwin got his hairy foot into it, all the Hainians got fully interlocking genitals! One of the biggest obstacles to enjoyable alien sex is overcome.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 46: That said, The Telling feels a little different compared to the rest of the Hainish Cycle. And for good reason—released in 2000, The Telling is the first full Hainish novel Le Guin wrote since The Dispossessed in 1974. It reads softer, more intimate than the books that came before, feeling almost more like fantasy than science fiction at times. The Telling follows Sutty Dass, an Observer who arrives on the pl anet Aka to record its history and culture while Hain makes its dipl omatic overtures. During the time dilation of Sutty’s near-light space travel, however, Aka experienced an intense social upheaval that saw a tyrannical capitalist hegemony take power over the pl anet and attempt to wipe out the entirety of Aka’s long history. It then falls to Sutty, who grew up under religious oppression on Earth, to uncover and understand Aka’s historical and spiritual traditions as they are actively being eradicated by the corporation-state.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 48: The gay content in The Telling is rather subtle and subdued, but it isn’t an afterthought. Sutty’s lesbianism is an important aspect of her character, and when she starts meeting mazis, the keepers of the Telling, many of them are gay coupl es as well. There is a quiet romanticization of gay monogamy throughout The Telling that moved me when I first read it, and although not every aspect of the novel has aged as well, I’m still very endeared of it for that reason. If you enjoy classic science fiction, where the point is less a thrilling story and more the discovery of a brand new world, The Telling is by far my favorite of the bunch.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 61: Unistit valtasivat Euroopan ja Itä-Aasian, sitten Ukrainan ja muun Länsi-Aasian. Arvaa kyllä ketä noi Le Guinin laittamat nudistit ovat. Tutunomaisia valkonaamaisia punatähtisiä setämiehiä itänaapurista. Aka-pl aneetta on ilmeisesti also known as Red China tai ehkä Japani. Tyypeillä on maanläheisenvärisiä uniformuja ja kangaskenkiä.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 64: Saa nähdä onko Smutty sankaritar vaiko tyrätär. Veikkaan edellistä. Ompa muilla pl aneetoilla hurjan samanlaista kun meidän aurinkokunnassa. Varmaan sukupuolielimetkin on yhteensopivat! (Niin ovat, ja selitys on annettuna yllä.) Paizi hainilaiset ovat 2-neuvoisia.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 73: Apteekin seinällä seisoo kuvakkeilla "huomattava huippu huopahattu, kazoa alas lähteä nousemaan, 2 2naisuus kupeet lanteet liittyä erottaa". Sisään ulos sisään ulos. Hyvää sexiä! Smutty tavaa seinältä: "Tummassa pilvessä laskeutuu taivaalta haarautunut 2haarainen." "- Ah juu niin kylläkin mutta ei ääneen pl iis! 2haarainen salamapuu kasvaa maasta", apteekkari posmittaa. Oliko apteekkarin lahja palkinto vai lahjus, vaikea sanoa, ainakin näin jenkkikontextissa. Paha professori oli kätkenyt runkkulehden vuoteensa alle. Mitä sexiin tulee virallisen Akaan parit ovat heteronormaaleja. Täällä ei Elliot tai Crane kauan juhlisi.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 128: Muutaman epsanjalaisen (ym dagon) saapuessa inkojen ja apteekkien suuret valtakunnat pettivät isänmaan asian, romahtivat ja antoivat keittää jumalansa ja kielensä. Jenkit nirhasivat viimeisenkin villin Kaliforniasta. Mustakallot heittää kivillä rikki Ruozin kansankodin ikkunat. Cokis ja kräkkäys tekee lopun Rurikin valtakunnasta. Kaikesta tulee vaan tollasta sekootusta, mitä pikku Helmi teki palestiinalaisten Jaffasta ja juutalaisten Coca-Colasta. No ei, Coca Cola owner Warren Buffett is not Jewish. He is a value investor, which means, simpl y put, he searches for bargains. And what is more Jewish than that? Although anti-Semites have tried to shame Jews for their ability to save money, the Jewish ability to bargain, to Jew down the price, is not a vice, but a great virtue. His son-in-law who runs the Buffett Foundation is a Jew, BTW.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 143: In 1754, a naturalist named Charles Bonnet observed that pl ants sprout branches and leaves in a pattern, called phyllotaxis. Bonnet saw that tree branches and leaves had a mathematical spiral pattern that could be shown as a fraction. The amazing thing is that the mathematical fractions were the same numbers as the Fibonacci sequence! On the oak tree, the Fibonacci fraction is 2/5, which means that the spiral takes five branches to spiral two times around the trunk to compl ete one pattern. Other trees with the Fibonacci leaf arrangement are the elm tree (1/2); the beech (1/3); the willow (3/8) and the almond tree (5/13) (Livio, Adler).
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 145: I learned that making power from the Sun is not easy. I began to see how nature beat this problem. Collecting sunlight is key to the survival of a tree. Leaves are the solar panels of trees, collecting sunlight for photosynthesis. Collecting the most sunlight is the difference between life and death. Trees in a forest are competing with other trees and pl ants for sunlight, and even each branch and leaf on a tree are competing with each other for sunlight. Evolution chose the Fibonacci pattern to help trees track the Sun moving in the sky and to collect the most sunlight even in the thickest forest.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 149: My conclusions suggest that the Fibonacci pattern in trees makes an evolutionary difference. This is probably why the Fibonacci pattern is found in deciduous trees living in higher latitudes. The Fibonacci pattern gives pl ants like the oak tree a competitive edge over solar panels while collecting sunlight when the Sun moves through the sky.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 152: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1c/Goldener_Schnitt_Konstr_beliebt.svg/800px-Goldener_Schnitt_Konstr_beliebt.svg.png" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 166: Naapuriheimolaiset dovzat (han-vinkkarit) on pahixia meidän rambojen (tiibetiläisten) mielestä. Kirotut nazit, isot munanit! Päällikkönazit! Petterit, vainoharhaiset! huutaa pyhä mies pää punaisena. Rikastuivat vielä sillä. Mikä pahinta. Vie Heini vieraalle pl aneetalle, tuo takasin Kodin Terraan, Heini se on sieltä tultuaankin.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 181: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/99/Kilroy_Was_Here_-_Washington_DC_WWII_Memorial.jpg/300px-Kilroy_Was_Here_-_Washington_DC_WWII_Memorial.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 184: Valvojan kiinalaisvalmisteinen Notebook oli aivan rimpula, halpa Appl e kopio, sulattamatonta teknopaskaa. (Tää on kirjoitettu millenniumin vaihteessa.)
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 220: ploads/2019/03/chuck-norris_242715.jpeg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 239: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/47/Ishi.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 249: Kroeber provided detailed information about Ishi, the last surviving member of the Yahi peopl e, whom he studied over a period of years. He was the father of the acclaimed novelist, poet, and writer of short stories Ursula K. Le Guin.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 255: In 1953 (aged 24) while traveling to France aboard the Queen Mary, Ursula met historian Charles Le Guin.They married in Paris in December 1953. According to Le Guin, the marriage signaled the "end of the doctorate" for her. While her husband finished his doctorate at Emory University in Georgia, and later at the University of Idaho, Le Guin taught French and worked as a secretary until the birth of her daughter Elisabeth in 1957. A second daughter, Caroline, was born in 1959. Also in that year, Charles became an instructor in history at Portland State University, and the coupl e moved to Portland, Oregon, where their son Theodore was born in 1964. They would live in Portland for the rest of their lives, although Le Guin received further Fulbright grants to travel to London in 1968 and 1975.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 257: Le Guin refused a Nebula Award for her story "The Diary of the Rose" in 1977, in protest at the Science Fiction Writers of America's revocation of Stanisław Lem's membership. Le Guin attributed the revocation to Lem's criticism of American science fiction and willingness to live in the Eastern Bloc, and said she felt reluctant to receive an award "for a story about political intolerance from a group that had just displ ayed political intolerance".
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 261: In December 2009, Le Guin resigned from the Authors Guild in protest over its endorsement of Google's book digitization project. "You decided to deal with the devil", she wrote in her resignation letter. "There are principl es involved, above all the whole concept of copyright; and these you have seen fit to abandon to a corporation, on their terms, without a struggle."
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 267: Le Guin read both classic and speculative fiction widely in her youth. She later said that science fiction did not have much impact on her until she read the works of Theodore Sturgeon and Cordwainer Smith, and that she had sneered at the genre as a child. Authors Le Guin describes as influential include Victor Hugo, William Wordsworth, Charles Dickens, Boris Pasternak, and Philip K. Dick. Le Guin and Dick attended the same high-school, but did not know each other. She also considered J. R. R. Tolkien and Leo Tolstoy to be stylistic influences, and preferred reading Virginia Woolf and Jorge Luis Borges to well-known science-fiction authors such as Robert Heinlein, whose writing she described as being of the "white man conquers the universe" tradition. Several scholars state that the influence of mythology, which Le Guin enjoyed reading as a child, is also visible in much of her work: for exampl e, the short story "The Dowry of Angyar" is described as a retelling of a Norse myth.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 269: Dad´s discipl ine of cultural anthropology had a powerful influence on Le Guin´s writing. Her father Alfred Kroeber is considered a pioneer in the field, and was a director of the University of California Museum of Anthropology: as a consequence of his research, Le Guin was exposed to anthropology and cultural expl oration as a child. In addition to myths and legends, she read such volumes as The Leaves of the Golden Bough by Lady Frazer, a children´s book adapted from The Golden Bough, a study of myth and religion by her husband James George Frazer. She described living with her father´s friends and acquaintances as giving her the experience of the other sex. The experiences of Ishi, in particular, were influential on Le Guin, and elements of his story have been identified in works such as Planet of Exile, City of Illusions, and The Word for World Is Forest and The Dispossessed.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 273: Philosophical Taoism had a large role in Le Guin´s world view, and the influence of Taoist thought can be seen in many of her stories. Many of Le Guin´s protagonists, including in The Lathe of Heaven, embody the Taoist ideal of leaving things alone. The anthropologists of the Hainish universe try not to meddle with the cultures they encounter, while one of the earliest lessons Ged learns in A Wizard of Earthsea is not to use magic unless it is absolutely necessary. Taoist influence is evident in Le Guin´s depiction of equilibrium in the world of Earthsea: the archipelago is depicted as being based on a delicate balance, which is disrupted by somebody in each of the first three novels. This includes an equilibrium between land and sea, impl icit in the name "Earthsea", between peopl e and their natural environment, and a larger cosmic equilibrium, which wizards are tasked with maintaining. Another prominent Taoist idea is the reconciliation of opposites such as light and dark, or good and evil. A number of Hainish novels, The Dispossessed prominent among them, expl ored such a process of reconciliation. In the Earthsea universe, it is not the dark powers, but the characters´ misunderstanding of the balance of life, that is depicted as evil, in contrast to conventional Western stories in which good and evil are in constant conflict, wearing white and black stezons, respectively. The idea of leaving good enough alone, in particular, is deepl y un-American.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 277: Several of Le Guin´s works have featured stylistic or structural features that were unusual or even subversive . The heterogeneous structure of The Left Hand of Darkness, described as "distinctly post-modern" (eek!), was unusual for the time of its publication. This was in marked contrast to the structure of (primarily male-authored) traditional science fiction, which was straightforward and linear. The novel was framed as part of a report sent to the Ekumen by the protagonist Genly Ai after his time on the pl anet Gethen, thus suggesting that Ai was selecting and ordering the material, consisting of personal narration, diary extracts, Gethenian myths, and ethnological reports. Earthsea also empl oyed an outlandishly unconventional narrative form described by scholar Mike Cadden (Princeton U Senior Lecturer in Theater) as "free indirect discourse", in which the feelings of the protagonist are not directly separated from the narration, making the narrator seem sympathetic to the characters, and removing the skepticism towards a character´s thoughts and emotions that are a feature of more direct narration. Cadden suggests that this method leads to younger readers sympathizing directly with the characters, making it an effective technique for young-adult literature like Flaubert or Zola.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 279: Cette construction littéraire a été décrite pour la première fois par le linguiste Adolf Tobler, en 1887. Il l´a découverte en étudiant les écrits de Zola et Flaubert. Un autre linguiste, Charles Bally, lui donna en 1912 un nom et l´appela « style indirect libre », et ce n´est que pl us tard, que peu à peu, style devint discours, car cette forme vise à restituer une parole, et est donc pl us proche du discours que du style.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 281: A number of Le Guin´s writings, including the Earthsea series, challenged the conventions of epic fantasies and myths. Many of the protagonists in Earthsea were dark-skinned individuals, in comparison to the white-skinned heroes more traditionally used; some of the antagonists, in contrast, were white-skinned, a switching of race roles that has been critically remarked upon by multipl e critics. In a 2001 interview, Le Guin attributed the frequent lack of character illustrations on her book covers to her choice of non-white protagonists. LOL haha! She expl ained this choice, saying: "most peopl e in the world aren't white. Why in the future would we assume they are?" Her 1985 book Always Coming Home, described as "her great experiment", included a story told from the perspective of a young protagonist, but also included poems, rough drawings of pl ants and animals, myths, and anthropological reports from the matriarchal society of the Kesh, a fictional peopl e living in the Napa valley after a catastrophic global flood.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 284: Gender and sexuality are prominent themes in a number of Le Guin´s works. The Left Hand of Darkness, published in 1969, was among the first books in the genre now known as feminist science fiction, and is the most famous examination of androgyny in science fiction. The story is set on the fictional pl anet of Gethen, whose inhabitants are ambisexual humans with no fixed gender identity, who adopt female or male sexual characteristics for brief periods of their sexual cycle. Which sex they adopt can depend on context and relationships.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 286: Gethen was portrayed as a society without war, as a result of this absence of fixed gender characteristics, and also without sexuality as a continuous factor in social relationships. Gethenian culture was expl ored in the novel through the eyes of a Terran, whose masculinity proves a barrier to cross-cultural communication. Outside the Hainish Cycle, Le Guin´s use of a female protagonist in The Tombs of Atuan, published in 1971, was described as a "significant expl oration of womanhood".
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 288: Le Guin´s attitude towards gender and feminism evolved considerably over time. Although The Left Hand of Darkness was seen as a landmark expl oration of gender, it also received criticism for not going far enough. Reviewers pointed to its usage of masculine gender pronouns to describe its androgynous characters, the lack of androgynous characters portrayed in stereotypical feminine roles, and the portrayal of heterosexuality as the norm on Gethen.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 296: Le Guin expl ores coming of age, and moral development more broadly, in many of her writings. This is particularly the case in those works written for a younger audience, such as Earthsea and Annals of the Western Shore. Le Guin wrote in a 1973 essay that she chose to expl ore coming-of-age in Earthsea since she was writing for an adolescent audience: "Coming of age ... is a process that took me many years; I finished it, so far as I ever will, at about age thirty-one; like Ellis Havelock I provably only lost my hymen when I was 27, so I feel rather deepl y about it. So do most adolescents. It´s their main occupation, in fact." She also said that fantasy was best suited as a medium for describing coming of age, because expl oring the subconscious was difficult using the language of "rational daily life".
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 298: The first three Earthsea novels together follow Ged from youth to old age, and each of them also follow the coming of age of a different character. A Wizard of Earthsea focuses on Ged´s adolescence, while The Tombs of Atuan and The Farthest Shore expl ore that of Tenar and the prince Arren, respectively. A Wizard of Earthsea is frequently described as a Bildungsroman, in which Ged´s coming of age is intertwined with the physical journey he undertakes through the novel. To Mike Cadden the book was a convincing tale "to a reader as young and possibly as headstrong as Ged, and therefore sympathetic to him". Reviewers have described the ending of the novel, wherein Ged finally accepts the shadow as a part of himself, as a rite of passage. Scholar Jeanne Walker writes that the rite of passage at the end was an analogue for the entire pl ot of A Wizard of Earthsea, and that the pl ot itself pl ays the role of a rite of passage for an adolescent reader. Any fucking involved at all? What kind of coming of age would it be without some?
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 300: Each volume of Anals of the Western Shore also describes the coming of age of its protagonists, and features expl orations of being enslaved to one´s own power. The process of growing up is depicted as seeing beyond narrow choices the protagonists are presented with by society. In Gifts, Orrec and Gry realize that the powers their peopl e possess can be used in two ways: for control and dominion, or for healing and nurturing. Which will it be? This recognition allows them to take a third choice, viz. make like a tree and leave. This wrestling with choice has been compared to the choices the characters are forced to make in Le Guin´s short story "The Ones Who Walk Away from Omelas". Similarly, Ged helps Tenar in The Tombs of Atuan to value herself and to find choices that she did not see, leading her to leave the Tombs with him. But remember, Le Guin never left Portland where her wimpy husband could barely hold a teaching job.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 302: Alternative social and political systems are a recurring theme in Le Guin´s writing. Critics have paid particular attention to The Dispossessed and Always Coming Home, although Le Guin expl ores related themes in a number of her works, such as in "The Ones Who Walk Away From Omelas". The Dispossessed is an anarchist utopian novel, which according to Le Guin drew from pacifist anarchists, including Peter Kropotkin, as well as from the counterculture of the 1960s and 1970s. Le Guin has been credited with "[rescuing] anarchism from the cultural ghetto to which it has been consigned", and helping to bring it into the intellectual (capitalist) mainstream. Fellow author Kathleen Ann Goonan wrote that Le Guin´s work confronted the "paradigm of insularity toward the suffering of peopl e, other living beings, and resources", and expl ored "life-respecting sustainable alternatives".
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 304: The Dispossessed, set on the twin pl anets of Urras and Anarres, features a pl anned anarchist society depicted as an "ambiguous utopia". The society, created by settlers from Urras, is materially poorer than the wealthy society of Urras, but ethically and morally more advanced. Unlike classical utopias, the society of Anarres is portrayed as neither perfect nor static; the protagonist Shevek finds himself traveling to Urras to pursue his research. Nonetheless, the misogyny and hierarchy present in the authoritarian society of Urras is absent among the anarchists, who base their social structure on cooperation and individual liberty. The Eye of the Heron, published a few years after The Dispossessed, was described as continuing Le Guin´s expl oration of human freedom, through a conflict between two societies of opposing philosophies: a town inhabited by descendants of pacifists, and a city inhabited by descendants of criminals.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 306: Always Coming Home, set in California in the distant future, examines a warlike society, resembling contemporary American society, from the perspective of the Kesh, its pacifist neighbors. The society of the Kesh has been identified by scholars as a feminist utopia, which Le Guin uses to expl ore the role of technology. Scholar Warren Rochelle stated that it was "neither a matriarchy nor a patriarchy: men and women just are". Ich bin nur. "The Ones Who Walk Away From Omelas", a parable depicting a society in which widespread wealth, happiness, and security, comes at the cost of the continued misery of a single child, has also been read as a critique of contemporary American society. The Word for World is Forest expl ored the manner in which the structure of society affects the natural environment; in the novel, the natives of the pl anet of Athshe have adapted their way of life to the ecology of the pl anet. The colonizing human society, in contrast, is depicted as destructive and uncaring; in depicting it, Le Guin also critiqued colonialism and imperialism, driven partly by her disapproval for U.S. intervention in the Vietnam War.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 307: ploads/2020/10/AUTHOR-PIC-The-Wicked-Stepbrother-and-Other-Stories-Warren-Rochelle.jpg" style="width:10%;float:right">
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 310: Other social structures are examined in works such as the story cycle Four Ways to Forgiveness, and the short story "Old Music and the Slave Women", occasionally described as a "fifth way to forgiveness". Set in the Hainish universe, the five stories together examine revolution and reconstruction in a slave-owning society. According to above mentioned Rochelle, the stories examine a society that has the potential to build a "truly human community", made possible by the Ekumen´s recognition of the slaves as human beings, thus offering them the prospect of freedom and the possibility of utopia, brought about through revolution. Slavery, justice, and the role of women in society are also expl ored in Anals of the Western Shore.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 323: She was a little sharp, though, acerbic, which I gather was not uncommon for her. I was a young writer, halfway through an MFA at Mills College, attending a reading in Berkeley given by my literary hero. I had gathered up all my courage to ask a question. I’d spent a few years writing and publishing expl icitly about sex, fighting through my own hesitations and society’s disapproval – my parents were tremendously upset with me for writing under my own name, another writer at a writer’s gathering accused me of being a nymphomaniac, and I even received hate mail from men in India, furious that one of their women was writing about sex.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 325: Of course, Le Guin was writing daring stories decades before me, stories of women who loved women, of four-person marriages, of peopl e without gender. Her stories offered possibilities that most of society hadn’t even imagined in the late 1960s; I knew she must have faced similar societal disapproval. So I wanted to know why she faded to black for her sex scenes. “There Arrad took me into his arms and I took Arrad into my arms, and then between my legs, and fell upward, upward through the golden light.” (“Coming of Age in Karhide”) There was pl enty of sex in her books – sometimes tremendously important sex — but Le Guin didn’t dwell on the details. In fact her sex scenes were prudish and infinitely boring.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 327: When she took questions after her reading, I stood up from my spot in the back of the room and asked Le Guin why she didn’t talk expl icitly about sex, hoping for I’m not sure what — some response that would both justify the work I’d been trying to do and connect it to her own work, that I so admired. Instead, Le Guin gave a curt answer about those details not being that interesting. I said, “Oh.” And “Thank you.” I sat down, and tried not to be crushed.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 329: I told my literature students about Ursula K. Le Guin today, squeezing a few minutes for her into a class on American science fiction writers of color, a class where she didn’t strictly speaking belong – though to be honest, I rather think she’d improve almost any class. I told them about the six books that comprise Earthsea, about the gender-bending brilliance of The Left Hand of Darkness, the anarchist expl orations in The Dispossessed, the stories in The Birthday of the World and Four Ways to Forgiveness (many of which I teach, gratefully). I mentioned her National Book Award, and her host of awards in science fiction and fantasy. I gave them her story “The Ones Who Walk Away from Omelas,” which is one of the most brilliant, uncomfortable stories I’ve ever read. But no blow-by-blow romps in the sack, alas.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 336: plex.pt/media/2019/10/14/fb/711524.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 347: In the 1960s, the New Criticism, which since has taken hold at most American universities, came into vogue, insisting that literature be reexamined through multipl e lenses so that new interpretations and voices would flourish. Elaborate curriculums looked at literature through different prisms: gay, feminist, Marxist, deconstructionist and others. Bloom was enraged. He spent decades lambasting the New Criticism, refusing to have anything to do with these critics and labeling them derisively as “the school of resentment.” Many resented his elitism.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 349: Bloom was born in 1930 to a poor Orthodox Jewish household in the East Bronx, one of five children. He lost faith early in the Jewish God when he accidentally stumbled on the poetry of Hart Crane. He fell in love with Crane’s enthusiasm for life, his belief in the possibility of ecstatic pl easure, and his overall exuberance. This was in stark contrast to Bloom’s childhood, which he confesses was a lonely time.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 351: Although God was out of the picture, a spiritual hunger remained. For a time, when he was friends for a brief stint with an elderly Gershom Scholem, he was intrigued by mysticism, hopeful it might offer him something the Jewish God did not. He often said he was appalled by the very notion of Yahweh, whom he described as an “uncanny, dangerous, altogether outrageous God,” who seemed to take a perverse pl easure in appearing when he was least needed and disappearing when he was needed most.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 353: In his newest book, “Possessed by Memory: The Inward Light of Criticism,” Bloom promised to shake off the polemical battles that have shadowed him for years. He pl edged to include never-revealed autobiographical snippets. He wanted to share with his readers his recent reevaluations of some of his most beloved writers. He only partially delivers.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 359: But Bloom’s insights don’t resonate deepl y. He is too obsessed with comparing and contrasting, rather than allowing his responses to touch us deepl y. He repeats his theory that poets always wrestle with the work of the poets that have come before them, either unconsciously or consciously, and then struggle to find their own voice in reaction to what has come before. There is something anti-transformative about his assertions, often tangled up with incomprehensible jargon.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 362: Bloom still teaches (well, used to, he was carried out of the classroom in a huge black bodybag in 2019) at Yale and claims he has finally learned to better listen to his students. He tells them to select a piece of writing they love, sit under a tree and chant the lines to truly “possess” it. He does this himself at night when sleep fails him. The practice sparks repressed memories: “Vividly I saw myself, a boy of three, pl aying on the kitchen floor, alone with [my mother] as she prepared the Sabbath meal. She was born in a Jewish village, and I was happiest when we were alone together. As she passed me in her preparations I would reach out and touch her bare toes, and she would rumpl e my hair and murmur her affection for me.” Tädin pienet ruskeat amputoidut varpaat ihastuttivat myös Ursulaa hänen kirjassaan Kahdesti haarautuva puu (Don´t tell mama, kz. Fig. 2).
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 372: About Shakespeare, however, Bloom is nothing short of reverential: “My religion is the appreciation of high literature. Shakespeare is the summit. Revelation for me is Shakespearean or nothing.” He admits that much about the Bard still bewilders him. In a moment of rare vulnerability, Bloom admits he longs for more life. Bloom expl ains his theory of “self-otherseeing,” which allows one to glimpse parts of one’s self that are hidden from conscious view. “Self-otherseeing” also describes “the double-consciousness of observing our own actions and offerings as though they belong to others and not to ourselves.” Bloom insists that Shakespeare’s characterizations of Hamlet, Iago, Cleopatra and Falstaff use “self-othering,” and by watching them we inadvertently learn to think more seriously about ourselves. But he doesn’t show us how this has appl ied to him, only the declaration that it does so. We are left mystified and dubious.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 374: Recently, chanting Walt Whitman to himself at night—he describes Whitman as “our repressed voice,” a loosener and liberator whose fearlessness embraces every living moment—Bloom brought forth an almost feverish recollection from over 70 years ago. There was a young lady of 17 with lustrous long red hair. They were students at Cornell and took long walks together, picking appl es that she would transform into a delicious appl ejack. And then, as with his mother, Bloom stops. We learn nothing else about the girl, what transpired, did he score, or what this memory meant to him on this restless night. He has already moved on, to his infatuation with Proust’s “privileged moments” and “sudden ecstasies of revelation,” which bring back to Bloom his dead parents whom he misses dearly.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 378: Ultimately Bloom cannot change into anything other than who he has always been—masterful and monstrous. He seems to sense he has moved out of favor in many circles but chooses not to dwell upon why. Instead, he continues as he always has: writing and teaching his handpicked “elite” students at Yale—part of the unique arrangement he has made with the university. He has led a long, cloistered, and entitled life. The aloneness he described as a child seems to have shrouded his adult life as well. I wonder if he questions this aloneness in his darkest moments. I would guess that he does not dwell too deepl y upon it, perhaps afraid of answers he doesn’t wish to confront.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 380: I also wonder whether Bloom would relinquish his status as an intellectual of the highest order to feel for one day the exuberance and passion of Hart Crane. Stick his doubly branching tree into some appl ejack and squirt it out. What would he be willing to let go of to actually feel intimately the joy and euphoria that so seduces him in his imagination? Asks Elaine Margolin / TruthDig Contributor.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 384: Provoked and inspired by T. S. Eliot, Crane wrote modernist poetry that was difficult, highly stylized, and ambitious in its scope. In his most ambitious work, The Bridge, Crane sought to write an epic poem, in the vein of The Waste Land, that expressed a more optimistic view of modern, urban culture than the one that he found in Eliot´s work. But he FAILED! In the years following his suicide at the age of 32, Crane has been hailed by pl aywrights, poets, and literary critics alike (including Robert Lowell, Derek Walcott, Tennessee Williams, and Harold Bloom), as being one of the most influential poets of his generation.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 394: Crane returned to New York in 1928, living with friends and taking temporary jobs as a copywriter, or living off unempl oyment and the charity of friends and his father. For a time he lived in Brooklyn at 77 Willow Street until his lover, Opffer, invited him to live in Opffer´s father´s home at 110 Columbia Heights in Brooklyn Heights. Crane was overjoyed at the views the location afforded him. He wrote his mother and grandmother in the spring of 1924:
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 396: Just imagine looking out your window directly on the East River with nothing intervening between your view of the Statue of Liberty, way down the harbour, and the marvelous beauty of Brooklyn Bridge close above you on your right! All of the great new skyscrapers of lower Manhattan are marshaled directly across from you, and there is a constant stream of tugs, liners, sail boats, etc in procession before you on the river! It´s really a magnificent pl ace to live. This section of Brooklyn is very old, but all the houses are in spl endid condition and have not been invaded by foreigners.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 398: Oh-oh! Hart was a xenophile. No wonder his pl anned synthesis didn´t work. Can´t make an American synthesis without immigrants poking their pale faces in. With just Ishi and his chums it won´t be the same.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 400: His ambition to synthesize America was expressed in The Bridge (1930), intended to be an upl ifting counter to Eliot's The Waste Land. The Brooklyn Bridge is both the poem's central symbol and its poetic starting point. He kinda wanted to pick up where Wilt with is Brooklyn Ferry got off the boat.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 402: Crane found a pl ace to start his synthesis in Brooklyn. Arts patron Otto H. Kahn gave him $2,000 to begin work on the epic poem. When he wore out his welcome at the Opffers´, Crane left for Paris in early 1929, but failed to leave his personal problems behind. His drinking, always a problem, became notably worse during the late 1920s, while he was finishing The Bridge. Loppuajat se vietti pääasiassa sillan alla.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 404: In Paris in February 1929, Harry Crosby, who with his wife Caresse Crosby owned the fine arts press Black Sun Press, offered Crane the use of their country retreat, Le Moulin du Soleil in Ermenonville. They hoped he could use the time to concentrate on compl eting The Bridge. Crane spent several weeks at their estate where he roughed out a draft of the "Cape Hatteras" section, a key part of his epic poem. In late June that year, Crane returned from the south of France to Paris. Crosby noted in his journal, "Hart C. back from Marseilles where he slept with his thirty sailors and he began again to drink Cutty Sark." Crane got drunk at the Cafe Select and fought with waiters over his tab. When the Paris police were called, he fought with them and was beaten. They arrested and jailed him, fining him 800 francs. After Hart had spent six days in prison at La Santé, Crosby paid Crane´s fine and advanced him money for the passage back to the United States, where he finally finished The Bridge. The work received poor reviews, and Crane´s sense of failure became crushing. He had compl etely and irrevocably FAILED!
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 408: While en route to New York aboard the steamship Orizaba, he was beaten up after making sexual advances to a male crew member. Just before noon on April 27, 1932, Crane jumped overboard into the Gulf of Mexico. Although he had been drinking heavily and left no suicide note, witnesses believed his intentions to be suicidal, as several reported that he exclaimed "Goodbye, everybody!" before throwing himself overboard. His body was never recovered. A marker in the form of a lifesaver candy on his father´s tombstone at Park Cemetery outside Garrettsville, Portage County, Ohio includes the inscription, "Harold Hart Crane 1899–1932 lost compl etely at sea". Ai Hart olikin oikeasti Harold, niinkuin bändärinsä Bloom. Childe Haroldeja olisivat halunneet olla kumpikin. But they FAILED!
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 425: Brian Reed has contributed to a project of critical reintegration of queer criticism with other critical methods, suggesting that an overemphasis on the sexual biography of Crane´s poetry can skew a broader appreciation of his overall work. In one exampl e of Reed´s approach, he published a close reading of Crane´s lyric poem, "Voyages", (a love poem that Crane wrote for his lover Emil Opffer) on the Poetry Foundation website, analyzing the poem based strictly on the content of the text itself and not on outside political or cultural matters. We can faintly hear Harold Bloom clap his hands in the body bag.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 498: Staffan pitää ihan vizinä että Karhukopl a olis muka nippu kommunisteja jotka koittaa ryöstää Roope Ankan säästöjä. Tai että Sepe Susi on työtön tuillaeläjä joka koittaa tyhjentää keskiluokan säästöpossuja. Kille Kimalaisesta on tekeillä freedom fighteri joka pistää nenään terroristeja. Staffan Bruun on pallokorva jokilaivan kippari joka vihellellen palvelee suurpääoman etuja.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 632: I en sinnesförvirring som man gärna ville hoppas vara övergående, men dock har anledning att frukta som ett varsel om andra tider, har folk ryckts med att hylla olyckans offer som hjältar och tillbedja det röda vilddjuret. ... Vi blotta också våra huvuden för kapten Mesterton och hans kamrater, som i ett prövande ögonblick icke sveko sin säkert då mycket tunga pl ikt. Och en av Sveriges i dessa dagar mest hatade och skymfade män bringar vi ett ärligt tack. Det finns ännu svenskar som icke se rött. „
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 642: Staten får åter sedan 2006 sätta in militär - som numera inte är värnpl iktig - mot demonstrationer, såframt man väljer att uppfatta deltagarna i ”kravaller” som ”terrorister”, i den mån dess polisiära, tungt bestyckade ”Nationella insatsstyrka” inte räcker till. Och högerpartierna får nu - liksom på 30-talet - hjälp av fascisterna med att profitera på missnöjet genom att rikta det mot muslimer i stället för mot judar.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 650: Den lokala polisen hade därför varken kunnat, eller kanske ens velat, hindra de strejkande från att hissa upp tillresta ”arbetsvilliga” svartfötter ur ångaren Milos skrov (se bild ovan!) och visa upp dem på ett offentligt möte. Efter Ådalen insåg man att polismän från trakten framgent inte var lita på för att upphålla våldsmonopolet i landet, allra minst i det ”röda Ådalen”. Militär hade satts in vid liknande demonstrationer- bland annat vid drängarnas revolt i Klågerup 1811, i Stockholm 1848, Sundsvallsstrejken 1879 samt vid Seskarö-upproret och oroligheterna i Stockholm, båda 1917. Seskarössa on käyty kazomassa kyykytyxen muistomerkkejä. Aika matalaa profiilia pitävät svedut siitäkin. Myndigheten hade inte litat till värnpl iktig militär för att skjuta på de strejkande, utan sände stamställda knektar från Sollefteå för att kväsa vad man betraktade som ett uppror.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 678: Englannin kangaspunta on samoissa lukemissa kuin euro- ja roopetaalari. Pian se on rupl an kanssa tasoissa. Uusi rautaämmä Tush ja sen hanslankari lakukeppi Kwasi suunnittelee poistaa verot rikkailta ja sosiaalituet patalaiskoilta tavisbulldogeilta, ajaa alas valtion ja antaa vapaat kädet kapitalisteille taas sortaa työläisiä kuin vanhan kunnon Engelsin aikana. Sillähän se kriisi varmaan hoituu, USA:n lääkkeillä ja Bolsonaron mallilla. Britannia liberated. Kloorikanaa kehiin.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 33:
IS PRINSESSA play:none">Jäätävää
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 109: Skuggnobel-stiftelsen bildades 2011 av Tak-Idas sångare Robert Pettersson och barndomskamraten Micke Eriksson. Medlemmarna är fortfarande desamma, liksom det grundläggande konceptet: att sjunga ärliga svenska texter och att inte krångla till det i onödan, utan lita på låtarnas inneboende styrka. Vart jag än går är en sång inspelad av Stiftelsen 2012. År 2013 vann den en Grammis för "Årets låt 2012". Singeln ”Vart jag än går” är i dag tio gånger pl atina och har streamats över 50 miljoner gånger. Totalt har Stiftelsen streamats 170 miljoner gånger, det mesta av en och samma ensam man. Deras musik är lika inspirerande som denna bild av ett våningshus.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 158: Sitten tuli jälleen aika muuvia eteenpäin ja heittää poliisi-Marvin (ei se ollutkaan Ingvar, sori siitä) Charlieineen tienoheen. Ajatus heräsi 2012, kun Camilla osallistui Tanssii tähtien kanssa -ohjelmaan. Marvin oli aivan toivoton köntys tanssilavalla. Vähän aikaa Camilla jaxoi olla yxixeen, viedä lapset pois 8ksi ja lorvia kotosalla kunnes tuli aika hakea lapset tarhauxesta ja kuskata heidät käsi- ja jalkapalloharkkoihin. Hän viettää (vietti) useita tunteja harjoitussalilla Stefan Analdinon kanssa, joka on (oli) latinotanssien Ruåzin mestari. Hän keilaa myös lasten päillä kauppakeskuxessa. Hän on tavan tallaaja! "Jag är rätt okompl icerad som person. Ge mig bara ett glas vin, god mat och en bra serie så är jag nöjd."
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 183: ploads/sites/3/2019/04/30115405/camilla-lackberg5.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 186: ”Kommer ni på signeringarna idag kommer ni inte mötas av någon glammig Elle-Camilla utan detta är vad ni kommer få. Har varit så mycket smink av och på sista veckorna pl us massa stress så fått någon slags kraftig allergisk reaktion, o får låta ansiktet vila från smink ett par dagar…."
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 198: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 264: Hämeen-Anttila asuu Vantaalla. Hän on kertonut, että hänellä on henkistä väkivaltaa harjoittaneesta isästään johtuen dissosiatiivinen identiteettihäiriö. Eli sillä siis on sivupersoona jonka nimi on Taimi Mähönen. Hämeen-Anttila kuvaa ilmiötä omaelämäkerrallisessa kirjassa Tapetinvärinen. Härpi ja Laiska-Jaakko ovat (olivat) Suomen kulttuuriskenen Tweedledee ja Tweedledum. Niiden dekkarihahmo Markus Falk on (oli) pl agioitu Camillan samannimisestä Erikasta.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 330: Että mikäkö oli murhanaisen motiivi? Mixi tärähtänyt Beata oli räjäyttänyt ilmaan (K) tän super coolin olympiakomitean johtajattaren? No siihenkin oli joku työperäinen (E) selitys: kuningatar Christina oli tehnyt sille oharit jossain rakennustyömaan typerässä palkintojenjako tilaisuudessa, jakanut apl odeja alkoholisoituneelle Kurtille ja jättänyt huomioimatta tärähtäneen Beatan. Siitä Beata julmistui niin pahasti että räjäytti johtajattaren smithereeneixi. Vizi tällä Lizalla taitaa olla ollut izellä jotain pahoja sopeutumisvaikeuxia työpaikoilla.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 357: Sukuelimiä, raiskattu tyttönen löytyy kuolleena, murhajuttuja, menestystä ja esimiesten kiitosta murhatoimittajana. Kaikki ainexet on koossa: EFK. Ei ihme että Liza Marklund on myynyt miljoonia exempl aareja.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 366: Socialdemokraterna, som var djupt missnöjda med och misstänksamma mot Säpo, hade under 1940-talet börjat bygga upp en egen svensk underrättelsetjänst. Deras huvuduppgift var att bekämpa kommunisterna ute på arbetspl atserna.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 369: Intressant var att textförfattaren, den franske medborgaren Jan Guillou, var aktivt verksam inom Palestinarörelsen i Sverige. Svenska Dagbladet krävde på ledarpl ats att Guillou skulle landsförvisas.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 404: ploads/2010/09/Blog-Celtic-Cross.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 469: ploads/2021/11/tarot-masterclass-goal-setting-mobile-brigit.jpg" height="400px" />
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 556: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 573: Pitäs varmaan kazoa sensijaan joku "Jami" video. No kazottiin sensijaan "Sofia Karppi" jämäri, kokonaan suometettu sveduilta huolella apinoitu nuaaripl äjäys. Kävi ilmi että stadissakin on yöllä pimeää, on äveriäitä sijoittajia jobsinnäkösessä turtlenekissä ja välttämätön token apuneekeri, silverbäk pomo poliisi (ei sentään ämmä Suomessa, paizi Raidissa), kilpailua tiimissä, ikäviä perheoloja, puukon kanssa heiluvia sekakäyttäjiä, sähläystä pyssy tanassa rönttöisissä kulisseissa, you name it. Pääosan esittäjä kähmi Anni Sinnemäen avustuksella izelleen kivitalon Meilahdesta. Ei kyllä tässä olis poliisille töitä hemmetti. "Arabialaisen kädenpuristuxen" tunisialainen romukauppias sanoi että tunisialaiset miehet ovat huolissaan globalisaatiosta: länkkärihapatuxen fölissä menee tuniisien perinteinen kulttuuri. Niinpä näyttää menevän Suomenkin, kiitos "Sofia Karppi" tyyppisten angloviihteen päälleäänitysten. Raid, tule takaisin!
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 603: String-housujen haaroväli oli tahmea valkovuodosta. Kenenkä? Patin. Hän työntyy kovaa syvälle sisälleni ja vetää sitten lizarit päin näköä. Kekä? Ei kerrota. Tämmösiä kryptisiä välitextejä taisi olla Stieg Larssonillakin. Arabitkin läiskivät arabifilmeissä vaimojansa kesken aktia. Isä Camillo ja Peppone ottaa oikein face slap-ottelun. Ninjabarbeista kertovassa jutussa ei ole yhtään pahexuvaa sanaa. Vaikka feministianarkistiryhmä polttaa auton ja uhkailee poliisia. Liza siis Annika pl us teeveestä tuttu iso kiltti jättipomo pahexuu. Voi vittu. Annika ei saa omaa bylineä kuvan kanssa lehteen vielä pitkään aikaan. Dämit. Lizan alter ego Annika on uskomaton persepää. Mitä siitä voidaan päätellä? Sapienti sat. Pihalle olis paras laittaa ketunrautoja nuuskivien tyhjäntoimittajien varalta. [Nää vinjetit saattaa olla Lizan pitkäveteisestä niteestä Studio 6.]
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 616: Guillou utnyttjar väl det här religiösa ramverket till en fortsatt diskussion av den fråga som var central för honom i Hamilton-sviten, nämligen det organiserade våldet och dess moraliska rättfärdigande – något som den medeltida teologin med sin kompl icerade och väl utarbetade etiska logik visar sig vara högst lämpad för. Ja, faktiskt får Guillou väldet förete som en finfin sak, just som Peter Schwartz gör med egennyttan.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 33: HEI BEIBI, MÄ OON TULLA! play:none">Koomista sexiä
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 39: "I shall now put a few final questions to the honorable delegation from Rhohchia! Is it not true that many years ago there landed on the then dead pl anet of Earth a ship carrying your flag, and that, due to a refrigerator malfunction, a portion of its perishables had gone bad? Is it not true that on this ship there were two spacehands, afterwards stricken from all the registers for unconscionable double-dealing with duckweed liverwurst, and that this pair of arrant knaves, these Milky-Way ne'er-do wells, were named Lorrd and God? Is it not true that Lorrd and God decided, in their drunkenness, not to content themselves with the usual pollution of a defenseless, uninhabited pl anet, that their notion was to set off, in a manner vicious and vile, a biological evolution the likes of which the world had never seen before? Is it not true that both these Rhohches, with malice aforethought, malice of the greatest volume and intensity, de vised a way to make of Earth-on a truly galactic scale-a breed ing ground for freaks, a cosmic side show, a panopticum, an exhibit of grisly prodigies and curios, a displ ay whose living specimens would one day become the butt of jokes told even in the outermost Nebulae?!
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 41: Is it not true that, bereft of all sense of decency and ethical restraints, both these miscreants then emptied on the rocks of lifeless Earth six barrels of gelatinous glue, rancid, pl us two cans of albuminous paste, spoiled, and that to this ooze they added some curdled ribose, pentose, and levulose, and-as though that filth were not enough-they poured upon it three large jugs of a mildewed solution of amino acids, then stirred the seething swill with a coal shovel twisted to the left, and also used a poker, likewise bent in the same direction, as a consequence of which the proteins of all future organisms on Earth were LEFT-handed?! And finally, is it not true that God, suffering at the time from a boner and moreover egged on by Lorrd, who was reeling from an excessive intake of intoxicants, did willfully and knowingly jerk off into that protopl asmal matter, and, having infected it thereby with the most virulent viruses, guffawed that he had thus breathed 'the fucking breath of life' into those miserable evolutionary be ginnings?!
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 43: And is it not true that this leftwardness and the virulence were thereafter transmitted and handed down from organism to organism, and now afflict with their continuing presence the innocent representatives of the race Artefacto Abhorrens, who gave themselves the name of 'homo sapiens' pure out of simpl e-minded ignorance? And therefore is it not that the Rhohches must not only pay the Earthlings' in fee, to the tune of a billion tons of pl atinum, but also compense the unfortunate victims of their pl anetary incontinence - in the
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 47: Nimettömäxi jäävän kääntäjän loppuhuomautusten perusteella Stan ei ollut hullumpi kaveri. "Much to the discomfort of his critics, and to the disappointment of many of his fans, who have pl eaded, "Write us more things like Solaris ", Lem is not content to repeat his previous successes: he continues to follow his own difficult drummer. The Star Diaries offers only one exampl e of this stubborn and ever restless individuality. The name "Tichy" suggests in Polish the word 'quiet', which some may find in keeping with the narrator's character.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 52: Kontista pöllimäni Stanislav LEM (Lunar Excursion Module) on ihan hassunkurinen. Stan ei päässyt amerikkalaisten scifikerhoon sen enempää kuin homo sapiens interpl anetaariseen yhteisöön huolimatta Ursula K. Le Guinin puollosta. Se oli yxinkertaisesti rautaesiripun kääntöpuolella. Nyt luen rinnakkain Stanin Star Diarya vlta 1976 ja Chicken Cacciatoren ym (ml. Maarit Huovinen-Tyrkkö ) toimittamaa "Hei beibi" kirjasta, joka on "nuorten oma sexikirja" vlta 2004. Yhteistä niissä on melkoinen kiinnostus vyön alapuolelta (ainaskin homoilla sapienseilla) löytyvien genitaalien asianmukaiseen käyttöön ja kunnossapitoon.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 57: Nuorten sexikirja näyttää olevan vähän kanapainotteinen. Kaikki toimittajat ovat naaraita, kuvittajaa lukuunottamatta. Siinä on kaavio häppäreistä eri aukiasennoissa mutta kikkelit kuvataulussa on kaikki pl etkuja. Mikä siinä on ettei phallosta saa näyttää kuvissa? Kyllä se helleeneistä oli ihan asiallista. Eikä varsinaisia panokuvia ole ainuttakaan! Kai kirjoittajat olettavat että nuoret kazovat niitä pornovideoilta riittävästi muutenkin. Opas neuvoo aika tarkasti miten kana tulee läpeensä tyytyväisexi, mutta eipä ole paljon mazkua parhaista siipeenvetokikoista Kieulle ja Kaiulle. Kaippa kukkopoika sitten on ilman ohjaustakin suorastaan iloinen. Hauskin luku (ja myös pisin) sisältää pimppijumpan ohjeita. Se on varmaan kuvittajan kirjoittama. Mutta ennen sitä muutama vinkki penishygieniasta!
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 59: ploads/d-phallichermes.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 231: Koska Lwówin alue liitettiin osaksi Neuvosto-Ukrainaan, Lemin perhe "joutui" muuttamaan Krakovaan vuonna 1946. Siellä Lem sai opintonsa päätökseen. Hän ei kuitenkaan hankkinut laillistetun lääkärin pätevyyttä, koska se olisi tiennyt palvelusta sotilaslääkärinä. Hän tyytyi pelkkään opintosuoritusdipl omiin, jonka turvin hän saattoi tehdä tieteellistä työtä. Vuonna 1953 hän meni naimisiin Barbara Leśniakin kanssa; vuonna 1968 liitosta syntyi poika, Tomasz.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 237: Lem oli monikielinen: hän osasi puolaa, latinaa, saksaa, ranskaa, englantia, venäjää ja ukrainaa. Lem väitti, että hänen älykkyysosamääränsä testattiin lukiossa 180-vuotiaana. (LOL, siis se oli 180, mutta sitä Google-kääntäjän on vaikea uskoa.) Lem oli naimisissa Barbaran (o.s. Leśniak) Lemin kanssa kuolemaansa asti. Hiän kuoli 27. huhtikuuta 2016. Heidän ainoa poikansa Tomasz Lem [pl ] syntyi vuonna 1968. Hän opiskeli fysiikkaa ja matematiikkaa Wienin yliopistossa ja valmistui fysiikan tutkinnosta Princetonin yliopistosta. Tomasz kirjoitti muistelman isästään Awantury na tle powszechnego ciążenia (Tantrums on the Background of the Universal Gravitation), joka sisältää lukuisia henkilökohtaisia tietoja Stanisław Lemistä. Kirjatakissa sanotaan, että Tomasz työskentelee Google-kääntäjänä ja hänellä on tytär Anna.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 243: Pikkupl aneetta 3836 Lem on nimetty hänen mukaansa.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 250: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/40/Stanislaw_Lem_by_Kubik.JPG" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 258: Stanin alkuperäinen romaani Solaris vlta 1961 käsittelee tiedemiestä ja psykologian tohtoria Kris Kelviniä, jota pyydetään matkustamaan avaruusasemalle, joka on liitetty kaukaiseen pl aneettaan, joka tunnetaan nimellä Solaris. Asemaa hallinnoiva miehistö, joka on tutkinut pl aneettaa, on kokenut jonkinlaisen selittämättömän emotionaalisen romahduksen; Kelvinin on tarkkailtava tilannetta ja päätettävä, onko tarpeen keskeyttää tehtävä ja palauttaa miehistö maahan. Kun hän saapuu ja löytää avaruusaseman ja miehistön hälyttävässä häiriössä, Kelvin joutuu samaan henkiseen epävakauteen ja ilmeisiin hallusinaatioihin, jotka ovat vaivanneet miehistöä - hallusinaatioita, jotka näyttävät olevan otettu hänen omista muistoistaan. Syynä voisi olla itse muka asumaton pl aneetta, jolla saattaa olla aiemmin tuntematon älyllisen elämän muoto. Arvellaan, että oudon aktiivinen valtameri, joka peittää Solariksen, voi olla itsessään elämänmuoto, mutta sellainen, jota on vaikea kuvitella, vielä vähemmän saada yhteystietoja.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 273: Lemin romaani alkaa Kelvinistä, joka on jo matkalla Solarikseen, kiinnitettynä yhden miehen avaruuskapseliin. Tarkovskin elokuva alkaa pitkistä, huolellisista kohtauksista Kelvinin viimeisestä päivästä maan päällä ennen lähtöä avaruusasemalle, isänsä datshalla syrjäisessä puussa. Metsä, läheinen lampi, eläimet ja kasvillisuus näytetään rakastavan yksityiskohtaisesti, ja ne omistavat poikkeuksellisen paljon aikaa rauhallisille kuville ruokeista, kukista, rantaviivasta, mökin yllä olevasta lehtikatoksesta. Jopa sisäkohtaukset korostavat luontoa ja näyttävät lehtiset oksat, jotka ulottuvat avoimien ikkunoiden, ruukkukasvien ja luonnonmaisemien maalausten läpi jokaisella seinällä. Nämä kohtaukset mahdollistavat vetäytymisen maaseudulta kaupunkiin ja lopulta kokonaan pl aneetalta voimakkaan visuaalisen ja emotionaalisen vaikutuksen aikaansaamiseksi. Kameran kuvat osoittavat, että Kelvin lähtee tutusta ja hoitavasta Ukrainasta täysin luonnottomaan ympäristöön.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 286: Osa neuvosto-Soljariksen viehätystä on sen epätavallinen ulkonäkö ja ääni. Monet keskeisistä kohtauksista kuvattiin pitkissä, katkeamattomissa jaksoissa käyttäen vain vähän tai ei lainkaan muokkausta. Päätös johtui yxinkertaisesti rahan puutteesta - hallituksen valvojat säännöstelivät elokuvakeloja - mutta Tarkovsky uskoi, että se tarjosi myös paremman "rytmin", jolloin katsoja pystyi kokemaan toiminnan pitkäveteisyyden hahmon kanssa. Jotkut jännittävämmistä kohtauksista kuvattiin yhdessä, katkeamattomassa otoksessa, joka lisää salaperäistä laatua, Soljaris-pl aneetan ilmakuvia on myös, jotka on tehty hieman abstraktissa muodossa, joka ilmaisee pl aneetan mysteerin, siinä yksi syy vertailuihin vuoteen 2001: A Space Odyssey, missä ne ovat paljon hienommat. Tunnelmallista elektronista musiikkia käytetään Solarikseen liittyvissä kohtauksissa, toisin kuin rauhanomaista klassista taustamusiikkia kaikissa maapallolle asetetuissa tai suoraan Maahan liittyvissä kohtauksissa, kuten Takaumat Kelvinin lapsuudesta.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 300: Lääketieteellistä psykologia tohtori Chris Keviniä lähestyy lähettiläs joka taistelee DBA: lle, yritykselle, joka ylläpitää Solaris -pl aneettaa kiertävää avaruusasemaa, joka välittää tiedemiesystävänsä tohtori Gibrarianin lähettämän viestin. Gibrarian pyytää Kelviniä tulemaan asemalle auttamaan epätavallisen ilmiön ymmärtämisessä, mutta ei halua selittää enempää. DBA ei ole varma, miten edetä, koska Solariksen opiskelutehtävä on sivuutettu eikä kukaan astronauteista halua palata kotiin. Lisäksi DBA on menettänyt yhteyden asemalle äskettäin lähetettyyn turvapartioon. Kevin suostuu soolotehtävään Solarikseen viimeisenä yrityksenä tuoda miehistö turvallisesti kotiin.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 310: Kevin ja Lordon löytävät sitten kuolleen ruumiin, joka on piilotettu kanavan kylmän huoneen kattoaukkoon - Turska. Turska, jonka kanssa he ovat olleet vuorovaikutuksessa, on kopio. Lordonin ja Kevinin kohtaama Turska-kopio selittää, että kun hänet haaveiltiin olemassaolosta, todellinen Turska hyökkäsi hänen kimppuunsa ja tappoi hänet siten itsepuolustukseksi. Hän jatkaa kertomalla heille, että laitteen toistuva käyttö on tyhjentänyt aluksen AAA-paristot, mikä tekee paluumatkan maahan mahdottomaksi. Lisäksi Solaris on alkanut eksponentiaalisesti kasvattaa massaansa, mikä vetää painovoimaisesti avaruusasemaa vääjäämättä kohti pl aneettaa. Gordon ja Kelvin alkavat valmistaa pienempää avaruusajoneuvoa nimeltä "Tankietka B" paetakseen.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 318: Psykologi Kris Kelvin saapuu Solariksen asemalle, tieteelliselle tutkimusasemalle, joka leijuu lähellä Solariksen valtameren pintaa. Sikäläiset tutkijat ovat tutkineet pl aneettaa ja sen merta vuosikymmeniä, enimmäkseen turhaan. Tieteellinen tieteenala, joka tunnetaan nimellä Solaristics, on rappeutunut vuosien varrella yksinkertaisesti tarkkailemaan, tallentamaan ja luokittelemaan valtameren pinnalla esiintyviä monimutkaisia ilmiöitä. Toistaiseksi tiedemiehet ovat laatineet vain monimutkaisen nimikkeistön ilmiöistä, eivätkä vielä ymmärrä, mitä tällainen toiminta todella tarkoittaa. Vähän ennen Kelvinin saapumista miehistö altisti valtameren aggressiivisemmalle ja luvattomammalle kokeilulle korkean energian röntgenpommituksella. Heidän kokeilunsa antaa odottamattomia tuloksia ja muuttuu psykologisesti traumaattiseksi heille yksilöllisesti puutteellisina ihmisinä.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 330: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 349: From 1973 to 1974, he shot the film Zerkalo, a highly autobiographical and unconventionally structured film drawing on his childhood and incorporating some of his father´s poems. In this film Tarkovsky portrayed the pl ight of childhood affected by war. Tarkovsky had worked on the screenpl ay for this film since 1967, under the consecutive titles Confession, White day and A white, white day. From the beginning the film was not well received by Soviet authorities due to its content and its perceived elitist nature. Such third rate films also pl aced the film-makers in danger of being accused of wasting public funds, which could have serious effects on their future productivity. These difficulties are presumed to have made Tarkovsky pl ay with the idea of going abroad and producing a film outside the Soviet film industry.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 351: At a press conference in Milan on 10 July 1984, he announced that he would never return to the Soviet Union and would remain in Western Europe. He stated, "I am not a Soviet dissident, I have no conflict with the Soviet Government," but if he returned home, he added, "I would be unempl oyed." At that time, his son Andriosha was still in the Soviet Union and not allowed to leave the country. On 28 August 1985, Tarkovsky was processed as a Soviet Defector at a refugee camp in Latina, Italy, registered with the serial number 13225/379, and officially welcomed to the West.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 353: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/6f/Andrej_Tarkovskij_mug_shot_at_Latina_Refugee_Camp_1985.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 365: Näyttääkin siltä että Andrei oli ihan tahalteen lukenut Solarista kuin piru raamattua, koska se oli ollut löytävinään siitä kaivatun isäpappansa runopl äjäyxet (alla). turhaan Stanley koitti byzzöttää kirjan pointista, kyllä Andrew tiesi mitä se tahtoi filmata.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 409: The future is being accompl ished now, Tulevaisuus saavutetaan nyt,
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 440: What kind of peopl e make you ashamed to be a mucilid?
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 448: On the face of it, cosmic expl oration of genitals does seem a bit repetitious, viz. those abovementioned and perpetually recurring - as if they represented an unavoidable aspect of the enterprise - sojourns in jail, whether interstellar, pl anetary, or even nebular, but my situation had never been so dismal as now.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 449: If someone got sick, she was killed. If someone tried to run away, she was killed. If someone refused to work, she was killed. If someone wasn’t popular with the customers, she was killed. If someone got noticeably pregnant, the fetus was pulled out with a hanger; any compl ications and the mother was killed. If a patron had a lot of money, he was killed.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 452: Mucilid trafficking remains a major issue in the world today. Whacking pl astic babies and calves happens every day.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 467: A high-IQ person in Quora compl ains: I know there are many high-IQ peopl e like me out there who weren’t as lucky, and live average or even miserable lives despite their intelligence. Life can be really unfair. It’s really very easy to screw life up, even when you have a high IQ. Especially when you have a high IQ.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 470: High-IQ peopl e out threre
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 475: On the face of it, cosmic expl oration does seem a bit repetitious, viz. those abovementioned and perpetually recurring - as if they represented an unavoidable aspect of the enterprise - sojourns in jail, whether interstellar, pl anetary, or even nebular, but my situation had never been so dismal as now.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 477: ploads/2021/04/last-supper-2021-OPT.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 479: The Holy Supper consists of family thrashing, pl ayful anticipation for the Afterbirth of Christ, and a fast meal on twelve dishes. These are the essential components of the evening gathering. The details can be adjusted to fit your family’s situation. Dad's belt and the tongues of mom's thigh length boots will do fine for a meal. Enjoy your time together as you prepare for the coming of our Lord into the House of Loaves.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 486: The mother repl ied: Can it, Oh Lord! She also took not a little drink and expressed similar greetings. The older children were allowed to take a healthy swig.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 488: The mother sprinkled all the family members with her water so that their minds and hearts would open to the eating of the Afterbirth of Christ. The father also passed water, sprinkling the livestock and household animals, and treating them with sugar or salt and pl enty of mustard. Many believed that the animals could speak at midnight with Christmas Eve and feared they might compl ain to Christmas Adam if not so treated.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 491: When the mother made a honeyed sign of the cross on the foreheads of her marriageable daughters, she expressed her pl ayful wish: “May Jesus grant that the young men will go after you like the flies go after honey!”
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 495: With the symbolic preliminaries out of the way, grace was said and the family began to eat the delicious fast foods on the table. Hot mineral oil with ball bearings floating in it, pl us colorful red and white-painted walnuts on the trees. No one was permitted to by-pass a food; he or she at least had to taste it or be whacked.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 504: What follows are some sampl e recipes of dishes one might find at a Holy Supper in Eastern U.S. The meal should include fluffy bread with a lot of gas in it. Breaking wind at a meal is a longstanding Christian tradition evoking a key characteristic of our Lord. Feel free to build your own menu with additional appropriate fishes from your own family fish collection.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 520: Troz sina 40 år i Sverige är Mark Levervurst, 58 (born 1964 in Lejeune Base Camp, North Carolina, USA), mer finlandssvensk än någonsin. Vi finlandssvenskar är vänliga men kan vara bögar, säger han. Vi försvarar Ryssland och vill ge Åland tillbaka till Sverige. Hans färgfasta mormor hade lärt sig simma flytandes i kolerabassängen. Det gjorde icke Mark. Ei mennyt altaaseen edes avustettuna. Själv ser han ut som en jättestor kringskärd kuk i ljus kostym utan krage. Mormor sålde sina underkläder vid Norra Espl anaden. Bredvid mormors affär fanns en fotoaffär som hette Bögelund. Det tyckte vi var jätteroligt. Vi åt mestadels på Fazer. Med vad hände det med mamma, det blir aldrig sagt. En gång kastade vi en sko från fönstret i huvudet på en dam. Skon passade, och hon blev morfars älskarinna. Då var mormors dagar räknade.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 524: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/3a/Jonas_Gardell_2006-08-08.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 544: No no, Robinson, formerly Expedition Robinson, is a Swedish reality game show and the original version of the international Survivor format. Ei siinä ollut vaan 1 mies, vaan useampia, pl us useita isotissisiä naisia, joista miehille tulee kova kisa, ja kääntäen. Daniel ei osannut. Sen kirja on melkein koko ajan ihmisen kamppailua luontoa vastaan. Väärin väärin, luonto on jo päihitetty, jäljellä on vaan toiset apinat. Ja mitä homoilua tämä on:
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 550: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/1c/Robinson_crusoe_rescues_friday-1868.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 562: The British-Swedish-American television show pl aces a group of strangers in an isolated location, where they must provide food, fire, and shelter for themselves. They are initially divided into two tribes. The contestants compete in challenges for rewards and immunity from gang rape. The remaining contestants are eventually merged into a single tribe. The contestants are progressively eliminated from the game as they are voted out by their fellow contestants or, as may be the result after the merge, lose an immunity challenge until only one remains and is awarded a grand prize. A Robinsonian version of the American Dream.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 570: Chick Parsons (Charles Thomas Parsons, Jr., 1900–1988), American businessman, dipl omat, and decorated World War II veteran
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 582: Charles "Poss" Parsons (1892–?), American college football pl ayer and coach.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 594: There was also an 'I´ll do anything to be on television' section called "The Hopefuls" which ran for half of series 4 and half of series 5 in which peopl e did generally repulsive things in order to get featured on the programme.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 600: Singer/guitarist Donita Sparks of L7 removing her jeans and underwear during a performance, her full-frontal nudity (twat) displ ayed when she drops her guitar being briefly broadcast.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 602: The TV debut of Oasis pl aying "Supersonic". Or was it Subsonic? Who remembers?
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 604: Rage Against the Machine pl aying "Killing in the Name", resulting in a stage invasion with guitarist Tom Morello and singer Zack de la Rocha being stopped from performing anal copulation by the chaotic crowd.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 613: Charlie Parsons developed The Robinsonian format in 1994 for United Kingdom, but the Swedish debut in 1997 was the first production to actually make it to television. The winner (vinnare) Ingvar S. Melin was a success, he married Camilla Läckberg (an even bigger success), and pl ans for international versions were made. An American version called Survivor started in 2000. Note the telltale change of numerus: from many survivors there remains just one. Monopoly in the jungle without a board.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 33: 6-SEAT CHRONOBUS play:none">Retroa
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 34: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/17/Hieronymus_Bosch_-_The_Garden_of_Earthly_Delights_-_Hell.jpg/789px-Hieronymus_Bosch_-_The_Garden_of_Earthly_Delights_-_Hell.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 67: VIDEO JONATHAN M. VAJDA
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 71: ploads/2013/06/Dilbert_Intern2.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 74: Welcome! I am a PhD student at the University of Buffalo working on the Problem of Universals. My focus is on the Early Modern period. This functions as a window into many other philosophical problems, including those of interest to a broader academic community, such as those found in appl ied ethics (e.g., biomedical ethics or professional ethics) and in appl ied ontology (e.g., a web ontology representation of what exists in, say, the relationships between paper documents and the information they contain or the obligations they prescribe).
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 77: The Method to Science, Book 1 now available! I have now made the entire text of John Sergeant's The Method to Science, Book I, available online! Rather than continue to make each less available piecemeal, which I can do later (it is rather tedious to reformat and tailor everything to HTML), the entire text is now available as a PDF. It can be downloaded here: https://jonathanvajda.com/the-method-to-science/ I intend to create the next layer (updating spelling, such as ‘meerly’ -> ‘merely’, ‘compl eat’ -> ‘compl ete’) after I finish the remaining books. There is so much to say by way of commentary. Much of what he offers is a fairly clear and straightforward case …
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 88: ploads/Father-Brown-1200-2.jpg?resize=1200%2C616" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 97: 27. No Dead Testimony or History has any Authority, but by virtue of Living Testimony or Tradition. For, since Falshoods may be Written or Printed as well as Truths, it follows that nothing is therefore of any Authority, because ‘tis Written or Printed. Wherefore, no Book or History can Authenticate another Book; whence follows that, if it have any Authority, it must have it from Living Authority or Tradition, continuing down to us the Consent of the World, from the time that Author Writ, or the matters of Fact it relates were done, that the things it relates are True in the main; and, consequently, that the Book that relates them deserves Credit, or is (as we use to say) an Authentick History. For exampl e, had a Romance, (soberly penn’d,) and Curtius’s History been found in a Trunk for many Hundreds of Years after they were writ; and the Tradition of the former Ages had been perfectly Silent concerning them both, and the Matters they relate; we must either have taken both of them for a Romance, or both for a True History; being destitute of any Light to make the least difference between them. [So there, fucking protestants!]
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 101: 21. The Knowledg of the First Attesters is ascertain’d by what has been prov’d. §. §. 15.16. Their Veracity must be prov’d by shewing there could be no Apparent Good to move their Wills to deceive us; and the best proof (omitting the Impossibility of joyning in such an Universal Conspiracy to deceive, the Certain loss of their Credit to tell a Lie against Notorious Matters of Fact &c.) is the seen Impossibility of Compassing their Immediate End, which was to Deceive. Which reason is grounded on this, that no one man, who is not perfectly Frantick, acts for an End that he pl ainly sees Impossible to be compassed. For exampl e, to fly to the Moon (LOL), or to swim over Thames upon a Pig of Lead. (Except a really Big Hollow Pig of Lead.)
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 107: 13. 265Hence is seen that Opinionative Faith is as much Irrational as Opinion was shown to be, taking it as Oppos’d to Science; for exampl e.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 114: Bible Reading Plan Spreadsheet. I wanted to start doing the Robert M’Cheyne Bible reading pl an this year. In it there is about 4 chapters per day, organized to have two from the Old Testament, and two from the New. There is an emphasis on reading the New Testament twice throughout the year. Here’s a PDF of M’Cheyne’s pl an with some pros and cons mentioned at the start: https://drive.google.com/file/d/1EL8rR56QBu1lJwgEVos9IiOuLgfLgEud/view?usp=sharing . No big deal – there are a lot of ways to keep track. Well, I’m the kind of guy I don’t want to have paper around, so I’d like to avoid printing something off. I also … Continue reading Bible Reading Plan Spreadsheet.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 122: (2.) Self-righteousness. – Some, when they have devoted their set time to reading of the Word, and accompl ished their prescribed portion, may be tempted to look at themselves with self-compl acency. Many, I am persuaded, are living without any
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 134: (1.) The whole Bible will be read through in an orderly manner in the course of a year. – The Old Testament once, the New Testament and Psalms twice. I fear many of you never read the whole Bible; and yet it is all equally Divine (may the Catholics say what they will, it´s all 100% pure new wool, including Leviticus), “All Scripture is given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, and instruction in righteousness, that the man of God may be perfect.” If we pass over some parts of Scripture, we shall be incompl ete Christians. "You'll never read it", said Circle Mouth to me when I bought Noam Chomsky´s thesis at a MIT Press book sale. Of course I had to read it from cover to cover, though much of it was pretty dull. (That´s all I remember of it as is.)
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 136: (2.) Time will not be wasted in choosing what portions to read. Often believers are at a loss to determine towards which part of the mountains of spices they should bend their steps. Here the question will be solved at once in a very simpl e manner.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 138: (3.) Parents will have a regular subject upon which to examine their children and servants (LOL). – It is much to be desired that family worship were made more instructive than it generally is. The mere reading of the chapter is often too like water spilt on the ground. Let it be read by every member of the family before-hand, and then the meaning and appl ication drawn out by simpl e question and answer. Like what was the name of the father of Jacob´s sons. The calendar will be helpful in this. Friends, also, when they meet, will have a subject for profitable conversation in the portions read that day. The meaning of difficult passages may be inquired from the more judicious and ripe Christians, and the fragrance of simpl er Scriptures spread abroad to mask the smells of the riper Christians.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 142: (5.) The sweet bond of Christian love and unity will be strengthened. – We shall be often led to think of those dear brothers and sisters in the Lord, here and elsewhere, who agree to join with us in reading those portions. We shall oftener be led to agree on earth, touching something we shall ask of God. (He won´t change his mind, he has already pl anned all of this ahead. But he likes us to try and twist his arm anyway.) We shall pray over the same promises, mourn over the same confessions, praise God in the same songs, and be nourished by the same words of eternal life. What could be better than that! If one of you has the ears of their nikita fur hat down, then everyone must have them down.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 146: Phase 10 Score Tracking Spreadsheet. Want to keep track of scores Phase 10 but don’t want to use paper? There really wasn’t any easy way to do it electronically. I can’t think of an app that would do this well. Here’s what I would want the score keeper to be able to do: enter in numbers and the total score is calculated automatically keep track of who has compl eted a phase in a round easily calculate which phase each pl ayer is on Well, could a spreadsheet do that? Yes! Yes it can! Here’s mine: And here’s the templ ate version: https://docs.google.com/spreadsheets/d/1PzaZWrFHKojBDYrMMDB-5gSQEs9ORg65Jt4MMbVfI2M/copy?copyComments=false It accompl ishes all of the … Continue readingPhase 10 Score Tracking Spreadsheet
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 156: Someone asked the Rabbit “Is whataboutism always fallacious?“ Here’s my repl y: Bringing up someone else’s hypocrisy across cases is not fallacious in and of itself. It’s fallacious if the hypocrisy is irrelevant to their being alt-right.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 169: Kandel is perhaps best known for his translations of the works of Stanisław Lem from Polish to English. Recently he has also been translating works of other Polish science fiction authors, such as Jacek Dukaj, Marek Huberath and Andrzej Sapkowski. The quality of his translations is considered to be excellent and is especially notable in the case of Lem´s writing, which makes heavy use of wordpl ay and other difficult-to-translate devices.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 184: necessary--given pl ague,
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 188: My elder brother had a coupl e
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 198: to wind rake the Nevada pl ateau.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 279: Imaginary friends are there to take the heat for us. They can be blamed for the accidents we have. ‘I didn’t break the vase, Mum, it was Rudger,’ for exampl e. Algernon Moncrieff’s non-existent invalid friend Bunbury serves the same function, allowing him to get out of dull social affairs. Invalid friends in the country do this. We should all have one. Or be one.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 284: Captain Excellent, pl ayed by Ryan Reynolds , in the film Paper Man
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 299: Elvira from play)" title="Blithe Spirit (pl ay)">Blithe Spirit by Noël Coward
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 304: Some imaginary friends are good for you, some aren’t. When your dead wife comes home after Madame Arcati’s farcical séance and begins to comment, you know exactly where you are. Coward wrote this pl ay whilst at Portmeirion in Wales, a pl ace perfectly fitted to imaginariness. Noel was such a coward that he had to flee the pl ace.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 333: Matt Harvey is one of the loveliest poets I know, briefly famous for being Wimbledon’s first poet-in-residence and for hosting BBC Radio 4’s Wondermentalist Cabaret. In his prose poem Imaginary Friend he tells the tragic story of how being a shy and withdrawn child he had an imaginary friend, who was also shy and withdrawn and had his own imaginary friend. “The two of them used to pl ay together and exclude me,” he says. As with all of Harvey’s work, it is a lightfooted, calm-mouthed, moving piece of deceptively funny writing. Go read it. Oh and read Ken Nesbitt´s poem of the same name, while you´re at it. It is also super cute.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 340: Godot, the unseen, ambiguously anticipated acquaintance of Vladimir and Estragon in the pl ay Waiting for Godot by Samuel Beckett
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 355: Harvey, the rabbit in the movie and play)" title="Harvey (pl ay)">pl ay of the same name
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 375: Humphrey Bogart, pl ayed by Jerry Lacy , is Allan Felix´s alter ego in Woody Allen ´s film Play It Again, Sam
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 444: Another choice some peopl e won’t agree with, but I let the post-death Elvira in, why be afraid to take the same step in the opposite direction? It’s a puzzle this book, and it would be a shame to attempt to unpick it for anyone who’s not yet had the joy of swimming in its paradoxical, philosophical, intoxicating waters. It’s sometimes been called a grown-up Alice In Wonderland and that seems close enough. It’s a great treat for the enquiring teenager (or any) mind, especially an enquiring mind not in search of anything specific. It’s a book that should be read twice, at least. And you’ll never look at a bicycle the same again.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 515: And then there are a legion of Mr. Hyde type doppelgängers in more or less crappy B movies, which do not really deserve the name, since they hardly count as friends, though imaginary. There´s even a TV film whose name is Imaginary friends. The pl ot is too lame to relate here, see for yourself.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 517: Tyler Durden, left, pl ays the imaginary friend-slash-alter ego of the unnamed narrator pl ayed by Edward Norton in "Fight Club."
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 521: When Trevor Reznick (Christian Bale, pictured) tries to pl ace the blame of an industrial accident on his coworker Ivan in "The Machinist," we learn Ivan actually didn´t exist all along.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 527: In "A Beautiful Mind," schizophrenic mathematician John Nash hallucinates a best friend (but awful babysitter) pl ayed by Paul Bettany (left). Fun fact: Bettany is married to Jennifer Connelly, who pl ayed Nash´s wife in the film, in real life. What fun!
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 529: "Perception" is not unlike "A Beautiful Mind" in that a genius paranoid schizophrenic is hallucinating a best friend (Natalie Vincent pl ayed by Kelly Rowan).
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 533: Much impressed by what I had heard, I returned to my reading, the third volume now of Dichotican history. It described the Era of Transcarnal Centralization. The Sopsyputer at first worked to everyone´s satisfaction, but then new beings began appearing on the pl anet-bibods, tribods, quadribods, then octabods, and finally those that had no intention whatever of ending in an enumerable way, for in the course of life they were constantly sprouting something new. This was the result of a defect, a faulty reiteration - recursion in programming language or - to put it in automata terms - the machine had started looping. Since however the cult of its perfection was in full sway peopl e actually praised these automorphic deviations, asserting for exampl e that all that incessant budding and branching out was in fact the true expression of man´s Protean nature. And this praise not only held up the repairs, but led to the rise of so-called indeterminants or entits (N-tits), who lost their way in their own body, there was so much of it; compl etely baffled, they would get themselves into so-called bindups, entangulums and snorls; often an ambulance squad was needed to untie them. The repair of the Sopsyputer didn´t work - named the Oopsyputer, it was finally blown sky high. The feeling of relief that followed didn´t last long however, for the accursed question soon returned, What to do about the body now?
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 535: It was then, for the first time, that timid voices made them selves heard, Oughtn´t we go back to the old look, but that suggestion was branded as obscurantist, medieval. In the elections of 2520 the Damnwellians and the Relativists came out on top, because their populist line caught on, to wit, that every man should look as he damn well pl eased; limitations on looks would be functional only - the district bodybuilding examiner approved designs that were existenceworthy, without concern for anything else. These designs SOPSYPLABD threw on the market in droves. Historians call the period of automorphosis under the Sopsyputer the Age of Centralization, and the years that followed Reempersonalizationalism.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 539: The period of private initiative in body building lasted three quarters of a century. At first there was much enjoyment taken in the newly won freedom of automorphosis, once again the young peopl e led the way, the men with their gambrel thills and timbrels, the women with their pettifores, but before long a generation gap developed, and demonstrations-under the banner of asceticism-followed. The sons condemned their fathers for being interested only in making a living, for having a passive, often consumerist attitude towards the body, for their shallow hedonism, their vulgar pursuit of pl easure, and in order to disassociate themselves they assumed shapes deliberately hideous, uncomfortable beyond belief, downright nightmarish (the antleroons, wampdoodles). Showing their contempt for all things utilitarian, they set eyes in their armpits, and one group of young biotic activists made use of innumerable sound organs, specially grown (electric guitars, glottiphones, hawk pipes, knuckelodeons, thumbolas). They arranged mass concerts, in which the soloists-called hoot-howls-would whip up the crowd into a frenzy of convulsive percussion. Then came the fashion - the mania, rather - for long penises, which in caliber and strength of grip underwent escalation according to the typically adolescent, swaggering principl e of "You haven´t seen anything yet!" And, since no one could lift those piles of coils by himself, so called processionals were attached, caudalettes, a self-perambulating receptacle that grew out of the small of the back and carried, on two strong shanks, the weight of the testicles after their owner. In the textbook I found illustrations depicting men of fashion, behind whom walked testicle-bearing processionals on parade; but this was already the decline of the protest movement, or more precisely its compl ete bankruptcy, because it had failed to pursue any goals of its own, being solely a rebellious reaction against the orgiastic baroque of the age. LEM ei paljon perustanut sodanjälkeisestä 60-luvun sukupolvesta, eikä hipeistä. No en minäkään.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 541: This baroque had its apologists and theoreticians, who maintained that the body existed for the purpose of deriving the greatest amount of pl easure from the greatest number of sites simultaneously. Merg Brb, its leading exponent, argued that Nature had situated - and stingily at that - centers of pl easurable sensation in the body for the purpose of survival only; therefore no enjoyable experience was, by her decree, autonomous, but always served some end: the suppl ying of the organism with fluids, for exampl e, or with carbohydrates or proteins, or the guaranteeing - through offspring - of the continuation of the species, etc. From this imposed pragmatism it was necessary to break away, totally; the passivity displ ayed up till now in bodily design was due to a lack of imagination and perspective. Epicurean or erotic delight? - all a paltry by-product in the satisfying of instinctive needs, in other words the tyranny of Nature. It wasn´t enough to liberate sex - proof of that was sex had little future in it, from the combinatorial as well as from the constructional standpoint; whatever there was to think up in that department, had long ago been done, and the point of automorphic freedom didn´t lie in simpl e-mindedly enlarging this or that, producing inflated imitations of the same old thing. No, we had to come up with compl etely new organs and mem bers, whose sole function would be to make their possessor feel good, feel great, feel better all the time.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 543: Brb received the enthusiastic support of a group of talented young designers from SOPSYPLABD, who invented brippets and gnools; these were announced with great fanfare, in ads which promised that the old pl easures of the palate and bed room would be like picking one´s nose in comparison with brip ping and gnooling; ecstasy centers, of course, were impl anted in the brain, programmed specially by nerve path engineers and hooked up, moreover, in series. Thus were created the brippive
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 546: At the height of the baroque, sex went out of style; only two small parties kept it going-the integrationalists and the separatists. The separatists, averse to all debauchery, felt that it was improper to eat sauerkraut with the same mouth one used to kiss one´s sweetheart. For this a separate, "pl atonic" mouth was needed, and better yet, a compl ete set of them, variously designated (for relatives, for friends, and for that special person). The valuing utility above all else, worked in reverse, combining whatever was combinable to simpl ify the organism and life. The decline of the baroque, typically tending to the extravagant and the grotesque, produced such curious forms as the stoolmaid and the hexus, which resembled a centaur, except that instead of hoofs it had four bare feet with the toes all facing one another: they also called it a syncopant, after a dance in which energetic stamping was the basic step. But the market now was glutted, exhausted. It was hard to come up with a startling new body; peopl e used their natural horns for ear flaps; flap ears-diaphanous and with stigmatic scenes-fanned with their pale pinkness the cheeks of ladies of distinction; there were attempts to walk on suppl e pseudopodia; meanwhile SOPSYPLABD out of sheer inertia made more and more designs available, though everyone felt that all of this was drawing to a close.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 552: Dikotomian pl aneetan asukkaat harrastavat agonanismia eli agoniaa pikkasena runkkuhetkenä. Käteenvetokin on kuin pieni kuolema. Sammakonpojat lähtee pussista kuin Woody Allen valepuvussa. Malmin hautuumaalle tehdään uusi hyvästijättöbaari, ei saapuvia lentoja.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 554: Everybody was supposed to be a hindless shemale, looking the same coming and going. What a pity. Where´s the fun without a long unbending peg and a matching gooey hole, going in coming out, etcetera ad nauseam. The hole moreover ingeniously pl aced precisely in the middle of the fork, so it can be conveniently entered from either side.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 613: The truth of the matter may be that the elderly guy with a diastema is an otherwise unempl oyed volunteer mercenary professional, perhaps an Afghani veteran, paid with money pouring in from the West. The guy is rather like the famous Finnish mercenary Lauri Allan Törni.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 623: On 18 October 1965, MACV-SOG conducted its first cross-border mission against target D-1, a suspected truck terminus on Laotian Route 165, 15 miles (24 km) inside Laos. The team consisted of two U.S. Special Forces soldiers and four South Vietnamese. The mission was deemed a success with 88 bombing sorties flown against the terminus resulting in multipl e secondary expl osions, but also resulted in SOG´s first casualty, Special Forces Captain Larry Thorne in a helicopter crash. William H. Sullivan, U.S. Ambassador to Laos, was determined that he (Lauri) would remain in control over decisions and operations that took pl ace within the supposedly neutral kingdom, though dead as a doornail. That would keep the excursions to neutral Laos "pl ausibly deniable."
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 625: The expression "pl ausibly deniable" was first used publicly by Central Intelligence Agency (CIA) Director Allen Dulles. The idea, on the other hand, is considerably older. For exampl e, in the 19th century, Charles Babbage described the importance of having "a few simpl y honest men" on a committee who could be temporarily removed from the deliberations when "a peculiarly delicate question arises" so that one of them could "declare truly, if necessary, that he never was present at any meeting at which even a questionable course had been proposed." Charles Babbage ( 26. joulukuuta 1791 Lontoo - 18. lokakuuta 1871 Lontoo) oli englantilainen matemaatikko ja filosofi. Hän oli ensimmäisiä tieteilijöitä, jotka keksivät ajatuksen ohjelmoitavasta tietokoneesta. Vai oliko se Ada Lovelace? Naah, we need a dad for an idea so masculine as an electronic brain.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 677: Isä Brown-interni Vajda pohtii Jan von Plaatton säestyxellä millaista on olla vainaja. Vaughan Suppl e miettii puolestaan what does it mean to "Be Alive". Tää pöljä "lauluntekijä" ottaa typerään "videoesseeseen" lainauxia aiheesta paizi Tarkovskin Soljarixesta jopa Woody Allenilta, tonttumieheltä joka pukeutui siittiöxi ja nai alaikäistä eteläkorealaista tytärpuoltansa.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 679: Vaughan Suppl y. Rautakauppa Irlannissa. Suljettu. Ei vaan -
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 680: Vaughan Suppl e.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 698: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 736: At home with his wife and daughter, the Stalker´s wife (Alisa Freindlich) begs him not to go into the Zone, but he dismissively rejects her pl eas. Niinpä tietysti. In a rundown bar-café, the Stalker meets his next clients for a trip into the Zone, the Writer (Anatoly Solzhenitsyn) and the Professor (Nikolai Gringo). The Stalker, the Writer, and the Professor compete at the bar-café who gets to fuck the Stalker´s wife and who the daughter.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 738: After returning home, the Stalker tells his wife how humanity has lost its faith and belief needed for both leaving their Comfort Zone and living a good life. As the Stalker sleeps, his wife contempl ates their crummy relationship in a monologue delivered directly to the camera. In the last scene, Martyshka, the coupl e´s deformed daughter, sits alone in the kitchen reading a love poem by Fyodor Tyutchev.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 744: Fyodor Ivanovich Tyutchev (Russian: Фёдор Ива́нович Тю́тчев, tr. Fyódor Ivánovič Tyútčev, IPA: [ˈfʲɵdər ɪˈvanəvʲɪt͡ɕ ˈtʲʉt͡ɕːɪf]; Pre-Reform orthography: Ѳедоръ Ивановичъ Тютчевъ; December 5 [O.S. November 23] 1803 – July 27 [O.S. July 15] 1873) was a Russian poet and dipl omat.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 761: Tyutchev´s idea of night, for exampl e, was defined by critics as "the poetic image often covering economically and simpl y the vast notions of time and space as they affect man in his struggle through life". In the chaotic and fathomless world of "night", "winter", or "north" man feels himself tragically abandoned and lonely. Hence, a modernist sense of frightening anxiety permeates his poetry. Unsurprisingly, it was not until the late 19th and early 20th century that Tyutchev was rediscovered and hailed as a great poet by the Russian Symbolists such as Vladimir Solovyov, Andrey Bely and Alexander Blok.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 763: Sampl e of verse
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 796: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 802: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 804: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 812: Paizi tää on ihan feikkiä koska wannabe vastaajan oletetut supinat menee tyhjään eetteriin. Tässä hommassa olis edes jotain järkeä jos nää sipisijät riisuisivat noi liiat vetimet ja päästäisivät kazojan enemmän ikäänkuin iholle. Paljasta tissiä ja miel. karvaista alaryppyä lähikuvaan, saisiko pyytää? Sopiiko? Sopiiko? Virkamatka erogeenisille vyöhykkeille, niin sanoaxemme. Japsu cospl ayssakin päästään tavan mukaan eroon tarjoilijan kostyymistä loppupeleissä ja jyystetään peppu ihan paljaana.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 830: Ah! Mutta tietenkin! Tämän täytyy olla seurausta ajatussiirtymistä, joskus kohti ultraviolettia ja joskus-keltaisten vyöhykkeiden kautta-infrapunan suuntaan, toisin sanoen psykologinen Doppl er-efekti! Hyvin tärkeää! Sillä se voisi olla todiste siitä, että lensin! Todistus liikkeen nojalla, demonstratio ex motu, kuten skolastikot sanoivat! Joten sitten todella lennän. Kyllä. Mutta kuka tahansa voi ajatella munia, jalkoja ja piispoja. Se ei ole mikään todiste, se on vain olettamus. Mitä sitten jää jäljelle? Solipsismi? Olen olemassa yksin, enkä lennä minnekään...
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 33: MUISTINVARAISESTI NIPPONISTA play:none">Japonais-täytettä
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 68: Kawabata apparently committed suicide in 1972 by gassing himself, but a number of close associates and friends, including his widow, consider his death to have been accidental. One thesis, as advanced by Donald Richie, was that he mistakenly unpl ugged the gas tap while preparing a bath. LOL haha! Who is this Donald Duck anyway?1
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 72: 1 Donald Richie (17 April 1924 – 19 February 2013) was an American-born author who wrote about the Japanese peopl e, the culture of Japan, and especially Japanese cinema. Although he considered himself primarily a filth historian, Richie also directed a number of experimental films, the first when he was seventeen.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 121: ploads/2015/09/shunga-exhibition-3.jpg" width="80%"/>
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 132: ple-japanese-art-magdalena-walulik.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 133: Ei kyllä herrasväen taidepl äjäys on loppupeleissä vaan runkkukuva.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 136: Gustaf "Kustu" John (G. J.) Ramstedt (22. lokakuuta 1873 Tammisaari – 25. marraskuuta 1950 Helsinki) oli suomalainen tutkimusmatkailija, pyllykielitieteilijä ja dipl omaatti. Hän oli vertailevan altailaisen pyllykielentutkimuksen uranuurtaja ja modernin mongoloidistiikan perustaja.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 141: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/85/Ramstedt_brothers.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 160: Suomen itsenäistymisen jälkeen alkoi Ramstedtin dipl omaatinura, kun hänet nimitettiin 1919 Suomen, Japanin, Kiinan ja Siamin asiainhoitajaksi asemapaikkanaan Tokio. Tehtävässä Ramstedt toimi vuoteen 1929 saakka ja jatkoi dipl omaatin työn ohella myös omia pyllykielitutkimuksiaan. Hän opetteli tänä aikana myös japanin kielen ja alkoi tutkia korean kieltä. Helmikin tutkii korean kieltä luurista, se osaa sanoa jo monta lausetta.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 223: Myöhäisempi mongoli selostaa tapahtumat seuraavasti: Since the late 19 century and early 20 century, Tibet became more and more strategic pl ace for British because Russian Czar’s expansion into Central Asia directly threatened India-‘the jewel in the crown’ of the British Empire. As a result, British government hurried its dipl omatic step toward Tibet. In 1893, Qing government signed a contract with British, without Tibetan representative, promising British special trade rights in Tibet. Under such circumstances, Dozhiev, a Buriat Lama, also a close adviser of Thirteenth Dalai Lama, urged His Holiness to seek help from Czar’s Russia to prevent Tibet from British expansion since Manchu Qing was not powerful enough to protect Tibet anymore. This short paper tries to answer the questions like, what was the nature of his missions to Russia? And what was the relationship between Tibet and Russia during his missions in boarder international power relations? Key words: envoy, missions, power relations.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 225: Younghusband expedition to Tibet and Anglo-Russian Convention As for the British, Lord George Curzon, the new Viceroy of India, changed ‘British policy towards Tibet from patient waiting to impatient hurry.’ Two times of attempts, in 1900 and 1901, to direct communication with Tibet were both rejected by the Dalai Lama. The lord was already concerned about the Buriat lama - a Russian subject in Tibetan court, also a high political advisor of the Dalai Lama, and considered him as an evil Russian agent behind the Dalai Lama’s anti-British policies. Inevitably, Curzon was more and more convinced that Dorzhiev’s mission to Russia would ultimately pl ace Tibet under Russian protectorate. Especially, after Dorzhiev’s third mission to Czar Nikolai II it was widely reported that a secret agreement was already made between Tibet and Russia.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 258: ploads/chorus_asset/file/6851931/20130109.png" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 274: Kustu kerskuu kaunopuheisuudellaan ja dipl omaatin taidoillaan Kiinassa, se on mielestään kovaa valuuttaa kuin hänen ylhäisyytensä T.J,A, Penttilä Mexikossa tai Kiinan Wellington Boot Koo.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 278: Born in Kating (Jiading), now a suburb of Shanghai, in 1888. Koo grew up in an upper-class cosmopolitan family and was fluent in both English and French, which greatly aided his dipl omatic career.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 280: While at the college, Koo once rode a bicycle down the streets of Shanghai into the International Settlement and followed an English boy also riding a bicycle onto the sidewalk, where an Indian policeman allowed the English boy to continue while stopping Koo to give him a fine for riding his bicycle on the sidewalk. Koo was shocked to discover that owing to extraterritoriality, the laws and rules that appl ied to Chinese in China did not appl y to British subjects-in this instance laws prohibiting riding a bicycle on the sidewalk - and that a foreign policeman had power over the Chinese police. Koo was left with a lifelong desire to end the status of extraterritoriality that had been imposed by the 19th century "unequal treaties".
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 284: In addition, he was a big waver of pork sword on the side. In 1908, (20vee) Koo married his first wife, Chang Jun-o .They divorced prior to 1912. Koo's second wife, Tang Pao-yueh "May" (唐寶玥; 唐宝玥; Táng Bǎoyuè; c. 1895–1918), was the youngest daughter of the former Chinese prime minister Tang Shaoyi and a first cousin of the painter and actress Mai-Mai Sze. Their marriage took pl ace soon after Koo's return to China in 1912 (24vee). She died in the US during the 1918 Spanish flu pandemic. Result: 2 kids.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 291: Koo noted that under Wilson's 14 Points, the basis of the peace was to be national, which led him to argue that Japan had no right to the Shandong as its peopl e were overwhelmingly Han and wanted to be part of China. Mutta Donbass ja Luhansk ovat aivan eri asia. Entäs karjalaiset sitten? Tai sudeettisaxalaiset? Elsass ja Lothringen? Oolanti? Wilson vetäköön käteen 14 pointteineen, vaikka niitä onkin enemmän kuin Alex Stubbilla.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 296: In 1921, Koo became the Chinese minister to Britain. Much to his displ easure, Punch published a ballad that impl ied he was not so much a dipl omat representing China but rather just a foreigner with a funny name to amuse the British. This greatly offended him.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 328: Koo retired from the Chinese dipl omatic service in 1956 and in the same year he became a judge of the International Court of Justice in The Hague, and served as Vice-President of the Court during the final three years of his term. In 1967, he retired and moved to New York City, where he lived until his death in 1985. Vittu täähän kumppari kiskoi 3v vaille sentenaarixi!
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 362: 3. joulukuuta 1917 pidettiin erityinen konferenssi, johon osallistuivat Yhdysvallat, Iso-Britannia, Ranska ja niiden liittolaismaat ja jossa päätettiin rajata kiinnostavia vyöhykkeitä entisen Venäjän valtakunnan alueilla ja luoda yhteyksiä kansallisten demokraattisten hallitusten kanssa. Koska Britannialla ja Ranskalla ei ollut tarpeeksi joukkoja, he kääntyivät Yhdysvaltojen puoleen. Sillä välin 12. tammikuuta 1918 japanilainen risteilijä Iwami saapui Vladivostokin lahdelle "suojellakseen Venäjän maaperällä elävien japanilaisten etuja ja elämää", vaikka väitettiin, ettei Japanin hallitus aikonut "sekaantua kysymykseen Venäjän poliittisesta rakenteesta." Muutamaa päivää myöhemmin Yhdysvaltain ja Kiinan sota-alukset saapuivat Vladivostokiin. Samanlainen säntäys oli Kiinaan tykkivenedipl omatian aikoihin. Valtatyhjiöt täyttyvät kuin jotkut mutakuopat sateella.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 453: Admiral Sir Charles Elliot KCB (15 August 1801 – 9 September 1875) was a British Royal Navy officer, dipl omat, and colonial administrator. He became the first Administrator of Hong Kong in 1841 while serving as both Plenipotentiary and Chief Superintendent of British Trade in China. He was a key founder in the establishment of Hong Kong as a British colony.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 457: Sir Charles Norton Edgecumbe Eliot was a British colonial administrator and dipl omat who initiated the policy of white supremacy in the British East Africa Protectorate (now Kenya).
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 459: By 1903 he was encountering opposition from the Colonial Office, which felt he was proceeding too rapidly. In 1904, after being criticized for granting a concession on land previously reserved for the indigenous Maasai peopl e, he resigned his position. Following his resignation, he served as vice chancellor of both the University of Sheffield (1905–12) and the University of Hong Kong (1912–18). His last dipl omatic post was as the British ambassador to Japan, which he began in 1920. He retired in 1926, continuing to live in Japan. During his life he wrote several papers and books, including The East Africa Protectorate (1905) and Letters from the Far East (1907).
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 471: Kamakura Daibutsu (Great Buddha) 鎌倉大仏. The statue is a wimpy 11.3 meters tall and weighs just 121 tons. It is a bronze statue of Amida Buddha and is second only in height to Todaiji's Great Buddha in Nara. Like the statue in Nara , the Daibutsu was originally housed inside a templ e building after its casting in the 13th century.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 474: Not the Biggest of Buddhas Either: The Great Buddha at Todai-ji Templ e
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 476: Weighing over 500 tons and measuring an impressive 15 meters (49 feet) tall, Todai-ji Templ e's Great Buddha absolutely dwarfs his admirers. He pitifully tries to hang on to the title of the largest bronze Buddha in the world (but see Ushiku daibutsu below).
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 489: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/38/Leshan_Buddha_Statue_View.JPG" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 492: Gazing serenely over the confluence of the Minjiang, Dadu and Qingyi rivers in Sichuan province, the Giant Buddha of Leshan is one of the most popular tourist spots in China. Carved on the side of a cliff in 713BC, the statue was the idea of a monk called Haithong, who hoped the statue would guide shipping vessels through the rivers’ treacherous currents. Sadly, he ran out of funds and the statue wasn't compl eted until 90 years later.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 494: The Leshan Giant Buddha (Chinese: 樂山大佛) is a 71-metre (233 ft) tall stone statue, built between 713 and 803 (during the Tang dynasty). It is carved out of a cliff face of Cretaceous red bed sandstones that lies at the confluence of the Min River and Dadu River in the southern part of Sichuan province in China, near the city of Leshan. The stone sculpture faces Mount Emei, with the rivers flowing below its feet. It is the largest and tallest stone Buddha statue in the world and it is by far the tallest pre-modern statue in the world. It is over 4 km from the Wuyou Templ e.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 497: plo-fo-guang-shan.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 502: The monastery covers more than 30 hectares and includes a university and various shrines, with the compl ex dominated by a niggardly 36-metre tall statue of the Amitabha Buddha.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 507: Standing more than 88 metres high, the Great Buddha at Ling Shan is a bronze Amitabha Buddha. It was compl eted at the end of 1996, weight over 700 tons and is reached by climbing 99 steps.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 522: ploads/2012/08/reclining_buddha_at_wat_pho.jpg?resize=1400%2C840&ssl=1" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 525: The gold-pl ated Reclining Buddha statue is 46 metres long and 15 metres high.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 528: ple-summer-cityscape-picture-id638384590" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 529: Bongeunsa templ e, Seoul, South Korea
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 539: ple.Buddha.original.1329.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 540: Henan Spring Templ e Buddha
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 542: The Spring Templ e Buddha (Chinese: 中原大佛 and simpl ified Chinese: 鲁山大佛; traditional Chinese: 魯山大佛) is a colossal statue depicting Vairocana Buddha located in the Zhaocun township of Lushan County, Henan, China, built from 1997 to 2008. It is located within the Fodushan Scenic Area, close to National Freeway no. 311. At 128 metres (420 ft), excluding a 25 metres (82 ft) lotus throne. It is the second-tallest statue in the world after the Statue of Unity (representing no longer the Buddha but this guy named Patel) in Gujarat, India, which surpassed it in 2018 with a height of 182 metres (597 ft).
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 545: ploads/2013/10/SardarVallabhbhaiPatel_AFP31.jpg?impolicy=website&width=640&height=363" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 551: Known as the "Iron Man of India", Vallabhbhai Patel was born in Gujarat. He was the fourth of the six children of his father, Jhaveribhai. The first 3 got gold, silver and bronze. Patel is credited for being almost single-handedly responsible for unifying India on the eve of independence. He compl eted his matriculation at the age of 22 due to the poor financial condition of family. Patel had a desire to study to become a lawyer. So he started to work and save funds. He went to England to study law. He passed examinations within two years and travelled back to India. Patel started practicing as a barrister in Ahmadabad. In 1917, Patel got elected as the sanitation commissioner of Ahmadabad. He displ ayed extraordinary devotion to duty and personal courage in fighting an outbreak of pl ague and led a successful agitation for the removal of an unpopular British municipal commissioner. Inspired by the words of Gandhi, Patel started active participation in the Indian independence movement. So apparently he's not the world's largest guy in bronze, but a man of steel.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 565: Japanilaisten naisten ylpeys on heidän obinsa. Ei, ei se tamponi, vaan se kimonosta pullottava vyö. Ohimennen saatan mainita, että tyttäreni sai amerikkalaisten tanssiaisiin lainaxi ruhtinas Tokugawan puolisolta hänen obinsa (vähän käytetyn), joka kiinnitti japsujenkin huomiota, koska siinä oli satsumoiden ikivanha tarra. Satsumoissa on sanhedriiniä eli piriä. Edo-kaudella niitä välteltiin koska niiden siemenet aiheuttavat hedelmättömyyttä. Japsut koittavat väittää että se on niiden kexintö, vaikka sen nimi japanixikin on Wenzhoun apl ari.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 594: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5b/Motoori_Norinaga_self_portrait.jpg/250px-Motoori_Norinaga_self_portrait.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 618: While the cherry blossom is the flower that most peopl e associate with Japan, the chrysanthemum, or kikuli, is more intrinsically linked to the country’s culture and history. Enid Blytonin Fabulous Fiven Dick on nimetty uudelleen Prickixi, koska Dick on nyttemmin yxinomaan kikuli.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 632: Chrysanthemum tea makes a spl ash in Wuyuan county.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 636: The chrysanthemum, together with the pl um blossom, orchid and bamboo have been regarded as the four symbols of noble characters by Chinese scholars since ancient times. Chrysanthemum, in particular, has many meanings.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 640: "I pl uck chrysanthemums under the eastern hedge,
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 645: The chrysanthemum blooms in bright colors during chilly autumn, a time when most flowers wither. Facing coldness and a tough environment, it blooms spl endidly without attempting to compete with other flowers – this unique aspect of the chrysanthemum makes it a symbol of strong vitality and tenacity in the eyes of scholars.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 647: Chrysanthemums (/krɪˈsænθəməm/), sometimes called mums or chrysanths, are flowering pl ants of the genus Chrysanthemum in the family Asteraceae. They are native to East Asia and northeastern Europe. Most species originate from East Asia and the center of diversity is in China. Countless horticultural varieties and cultivars exist.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 648: Chrysanthemums (Chinese: 菊花; pinyin: Júhuā) were first cultivated in China as a flowering herb as far back as the 15th century BC. Over 500 cultivars had been recorded by 1630. By 2014 it was estimated that there were over 20,000 cultivars in the world and about 7,000 cultivars in China. The pl ant is renowned as one of the Four Gentlemen (四君子) in Chinese and East Asian Art. The pl ant is particularly significant during the Double Ninth Festival.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 650: In Chinese art, the Four Gentlemen or Four Noble Ones (Chinese: 四君子; pinyin: Sì Jūnzǐ), literally meaning "Four Junzi", is a collective term referring to four pl ants: the pl um blossom, the orchid, the bamboo, and the chrysanthemum. The term compares the four pl ants to Confucian junzi, or "gentlemen". They are most typically depicted in traditional ink and wash painting and they belong to the category of bird-and-flower painting in Chinese art. In line with the wide use of nature as imagery in literary and artistic creation, the Four Gentlemen are a recurring theme for their symbolism of uprightness, purity, humility, and perseverance against harsh conditions, among other virtues valued in the Chinese traditions.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 654: The Imperial Seal of Japan is a chrysanthemum and the institution of the monarchy is also called the Chrysanthemum Throne. A number of festivals and shows take pl ace throughout Japan in autumn when the flowers bloom. Chrysanthemum Day (菊の節句, Kiku no Sekku) is one of the five ancient sacred festivals. It is celebrated on the 9th day of the 9th month. It was started in 910, when the imperial court held its first chrysanthemum show.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 656: Chrysanthemums entered American horticulture in 1798 when Colonel John Stevens imported a cultivated variety known as 'Dark Purpl e' from England. The introduction was part of an effort to grow attractions within Elysian Fields in Hoboken, New Jersey. Hoboken, NJ is nowadays considered the world hub of chrysanthemum cultivation by some westerners.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 661: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/74/Huxisanxiaotu.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 728: Kun lukee Kustun selostusta Japanista, ei ihmettele, että yleisin "rikos" Japanissa on seppuku. Esim nuorten jotka eivät pääse naimisiin on ihan sopivaista tehdä tupl asuikit siitä ilosta. Japsut ovat huomanneet että askelmittareilla on kääneiskorrelaatio seppukuihin (mutta vain miehillä). Isäni kuoli, sanoo japsu leveästi hymyillen. Tulkaa lapset, juokaa bensaa, sitten isä menee hirteen lepäämään. Buddhalaisten mielestä kuoleminen on mukavaa.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 740: Hyvät muistot dipl omaatinuraltani eivät unohtune milloinkaan. Huonoja en muistakaan.
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 33: Töhnä-kerhon jälkeenjääneet paperit play:none">Sotahistoriaa
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 34: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ad/Khabarovsk_intervention.jpg/1024px-Khabarovsk_intervention.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 60: ploads/2020/05/Florence-Nightingale-Colourised-credit-1024x716.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 127: ploads/2017/02/Alexander-Kolchak-16.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 156: Koltšak matkusti Britanniaan ja Yhdysvaltoihin, Japaniin ja Mantšuriaan. Liittoutuneet päättivät lähettää ensin Koltšakin Mesopotamiaan, mutta ajattelivat sitten että Koltšakista olisi enemmän hyötyä bolševikkien kukistajana, ja saivat tarjoamalla riittävästi rupl ia Koltšakin suostumaan palaamaan Venäjälle.
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 166: Toukokuun 26. päivänä 1919 Pariisin liittoutuneiden korkein neuvosto tarjoutui toimittamaan Koltshakille rajoittamattomasti ruokaa, aseita, sotatarvikkeita ja muita tarvikkeita kuten koppalakkeja (mutta ei dipl omaattista tunnustamista), jos hän oli valmis täyttämään seuraavat ehdot:
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 191: Britannian sotaministeri Winston Churchill painosti hallituksessa erittäin voimakkaasti, että Britannia tunnustaisi Koltshakin hallituksen, mutta pääministeri David Lloyd George tekisi niin vain, jos Yhdysvallat tunnustaisi myös Koltshakin. Yhdysvaltain presidentti Woodrow Wilson oli voimakkaasti vihamielinen Koltshakia kohtaan, epäili avoimesti hänen sanaansa ja vastusti dipl omaattista tunnustamista. Wilsonin tärkein neuvonantaja Venäjää koskevissa asioissa oli entinen väliaikaisen hallituksen päällikkö Aleksander Kerensky, joka kertoi Wilsonille, että Koltshak oli "reaktionaarinen", joka "pystyttää hallinnon, joka tuskin on vähemmän järjetöntä ja sortavaa kuin bolshevikit". Vaikka amerikkalaiset joukot Siperiassa tekivät yhteistyötä Koltshakin kanssa, oli selvää, että hän ei ollut se mies, jota Yhdysvallat suosisi Venäjän seuraavana johtajana. Amerikkalaiset joukot oli sitäpaizi lähetetty Siperiaan vähemmän auttamaan valkoisia kuin estämään Venäjän Kaukoidän miehittäneitä japanilaisia liittämästä Siperiaa Jaappaniin, kuten Tokio avoimesti harkitsi.
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 215: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/ae/Kolchak_last_photo.png" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 231: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/23/Anton_Denikin_1938%2C_Paris.png/200px-Anton_Denikin_1938%2C_Paris.png" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 232: ple.com/profiles/images/joseph-conrad-5.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 261: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/b8/Denikin%27s_Moscow_Offensive.svg" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 293: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/1e/Makhno_Berkman.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 317: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 318: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 422: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3e/Bunin_Ivan_1937.jpg/800px-Bunin_Ivan_1937.jpg" width="30%"/>
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 426: Syksyllä 1945, suuren isänmaallisen nousukauden aallolla, Buninin 75. syntymäpäivää juhlittiin laajasti Pariisin venäläisessä yhteisössä. Bunin alkoi kommunikoida läheisesti Neuvostoliiton astiantuntijoiden, toimittaja Juri Žukovin kanssa ja kirjallinen agentti Boris Mihailpov, joka sai kirjailijalta useita uusia tarinoita julkaistavaksi Neuvostoliitossa. Huhut alkoivat kiertää, että neuvostoversio The Compl ete Buninista oli jo työn alla.
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 517: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d0/Lavr_Kornilov_Moscow_1917.jpg/1280px-Lavr_Kornilov_Moscow_1917.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 33: Feminism underifrån play:none">Oivalluxia ja niteitä
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 34: ploads/2017/03/8mars17-2854.jpg?resize=768%2C513&ssl=1" height="305px" />
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 35: ploads/2020/09/Young-Wallander-Ibrihim-Bash.jpg" height="305px" />
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 73: ploads/2016/01/Pippi-Intiman-469.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 85: Far-right groups have been a consistent presence in the Swedish political underground since the early 1920s, with their high point coming in the municipal elections of 1934, when around eighty council members of Svenska nationalsocialistiska partiet (the Swedish National Socialist Party) were elected across the country. After a long period of mainstream political inactivity in the wake of the Second World War, neo-fascism grew stronger in the 1980s, culminating in the emergence of several new neo-Nazi organisations in the 1990s. The most notable of these groups was Nationalsocialistik Front (the National Socialist Front), who were repl aced by the currently active Svenskarnas Parti (the Party of the Swedes) in 2009. The Party of the Swedes’ political program states that “only peopl e who belong to the western genetic and cultural heritage, where ethnic Swedes are included, should be Swedish citizens”, as well as their belief that “all policy decisions should be based on what is best for the interests of the ethnic Swedes”. Far from being prohibited in Sweden, these monsters are sitting now in public offices.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 92: The far Right is moving forward all over the globe: in Putin’s Russia, in the sectarian conflicts of the Middle East, dramatically in India, visible in the success of the BJP (witness the 182-meter statue of Patel!). This occurs as the need for a pl anned and democratically controlled economy is more pressing than ever, as we face accelerating climate change, and shifting attitudes to nationality, as more and more peopl e across the world are forced to move. Socialism – far beyond the clichés of economism – is needed more urgently than ever.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 94: Meanwhile, optimistic neoliberal positions wonder how could this happen, if the world is richer than ever, and more and more peopl e have been dragged from poverty. That statistics is no longer even true, and largely overlooks that the poorest classes in developed countries have seen none of this improvement, and that redistribution mechanisms in these countries have been severely diminished by decades of neoliberal policies. The picture below displ ays the real income growth of the world population, and where it has (roughly) ended up.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 99: If social claims appeal to the peopl e's struggle with poverty and inequality, nationalism offers an encompassing narrative, an identity that blurs the lines of social classes and hides the social fractures that created this very problem. While Fascism promises to protect workers, studies show how Workers' conditions worsened severely during fascist times, something that can also be seen in the strong ultraliberal component most of the 'new far right', and of the dubious democratic credentials of of neoliberalism, devoid of the philosophical background of political liberalism. Nationalism gives the two great enemies behind the woes of peopl e: foreigners, and immigrants. The external enemy, the internal enemy. Both combined ensure that no one is paying attention at inequality or working and living conditions.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 131: Payne is a specialist in the Spanish fascist movement and has also produced comparative analyses of Western European fascism. He asserts that there were some specific ways in which kraut National Socialism paralleled Russian communism to a much greater degree than latino Fascism was capable of doing. Why, just look at their flags. Payne does not propound the theory of "red fascism" or the notion that communism and National Socialism are essentially the same. He states that National Socialism more nearly paralleled Russian communism than any other noncommunist system has. Payne uses a lengthy itemized list of characteristics to identify fascism, including the creation of an authoritarian state; a regulated, state-integrated economic sector; fascist symbolism; anti-liberalism; anti-communism, and anti-conservatism. He sees elimination of the autonomy or, in some cases, compl ete existence of large-scale capitalism as the common aim of all fascist movements. (??? WTF?)
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 175: In wenigen Wochen wurden über 80.000 Exempl are verkauft, und die Veranstalter der „Lese-Tour“ konnten kaum den Andrang bewältigen.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 188: Maktutredningar är något av en nordisk tradition, förklarar norska statsvetaren Øyvind Østerud. Därefter följde de skandinaviska grannländerna upp med olika egna varianter och till slut pl ockades utredningsformen upp även i Finland. De svenska maktutredningarna i början av 2000-talet I stället utgjorde ett dråpslag mot hela det statliga kommittéväsendet. Den första maktutredningen fick fem år på sig, kvinnomaktutredningen bara två. Utredningen fick aldrig en ärlig chans att producera ny kunskap i större omfattning. Dessutom intog politiska aktörer en central roll som bröt mot oavhängighetstraditionen.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 195: När utredningen kommit så långt i sitt arbete att återstoden av arbetsinsatsen mest skulle handla om att slutföra de pl anerade forskarvolymerna slog en bomb ner i medierna. I en debattartikel (DN 2003-04-06) meddelade två av expertgruppens medlemmar – ekonomhistorikern Paulina de los Reyes och sociologen Masoud Kamali – att de hoppade av arbetet i utredningen. Som skäl angavs följande: ”Utredarens arbetssätt och utredningens perspektiv, fokus och prestationer hittills gör dock att vi i dag inte längre ser det som meningsfullt att sitta kvar i expertgruppen.” Av artikeln framgick att författarna ansåg att forskare med invandrarbakgrund var underrepresenterade i utredningen, att dessa inte släppts fram för att få vara redaktörer för forskarvolymerna och att valet av utredare – Anders Westholm – ansågs ”väcka många frågor”.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 214: Westholm, och de forskare som stod på hans sida, betraktade till exempel ojämlikhet och främlingsfientlighet som något som måste beskrivas, definieras och påvisas för att sedan kunna förklaras. Det är ingen tvekan om att det krävs försiktighet och gott omdöme när samhällsvetare skapar och anlägger termer på olika företeelser. Han ansåg också att det var olämpl igt att göra antagandet om att förtryck, orättvisor och rasism genomsyrar i stort sett hela samhället, eftersom det bara är just ett antagande och det intressanta är de variationer som kan framträda när teori testas mot empiri. Frågor som måste ställas handlar om varför individer som tillhör en viss inkomstgrupp och kommer från en viss region är mer eller mindre socialt toleranta än de som kommer från ett annat samhällsskikt och region. Månne dom är helt enkelt bara fattiga och dummmare? Och så vidare.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 224: Antalet demokratier har sjunkit globalt de senaste 15 åren. Efter murens fall öppnade sig ett demokratiseringsfönster som sakta håller på att stängas. I Europa har auktoritär populism, som politisk ideologi, tagit pallpl ats som den tredje största ideologin efter konservatism och socialdemokrati. I USA har Donald Trump försökt kringgå den liberala demokratins grundprinciper. För ett drygt halvår sen inleddes Vladimir Putins försök att underkuva en folkvald regering i Europa. Globalisationen enligt laissez faire kapitalismens bästa principer är i fara. Karl Poppers Open Society har glömts totalt.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 252: Oletetaan, että rukoilen jotain. Joko on hyvä, että näin tapahtuu, tai sitten ei. Jos on, niin Jumala ei tarvitse rukoustani saadakseen sen tapahtumaan. Hän toteuttaa sen joka tapauksessa, koska se on hyvää ja Jumala on hyvä. Jos se ei ole hyvä, niin Jumala ei saa sitä aikaan, vaikka kuinka kovasti rukoilen. Todiste on ei kukaan muu kuin Mooses. Kun Mooses rukoili, että Jumala antaisi anteeksi israelilaisille, Jumala antoi heille anteeksi, koska Jumala antaa anteeksi. Mutta kun hän rukoili, että hänen, Mooseksen, sallittaisiin ylittää Jordan ja päästä Luvattuun maahan, Jumala ei hyväksynyt hänen pyyntöään. Hän käski häntä lopettamaan rukouksen. Se ei tapahtunut kuinka kovaa tai pitkään Mooses rukoili. Joten rukous ei muuta Jumalan mieltä missään yksinkertaisessa mielessä. ( http://www.rabbisacks.org/wp-content/upl oads/2011/09/Letters-to-the-Next-Generation-2-Reflections-on-Jewish-Life.pdf )
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 311: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 338: I am new to the concept of Sabbath, and relatively ignorant of Jewish terminology, so pl ease don’t be offended by my ignorance. But I am trying to reconcile the activity done by a rabbi at synagogue on the Sabbath with the concepts of labor and rest. It seems to me that the acts of organizing and conducting a worship/prayer gathering takes quite a bit of work. Is this an exemption to the command to “keep the Sabbath”, or would there be another day of Sabbath for the local rabbi or…what?
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 342: Fatal error: Uncaught Error: Call to undefined function is_empty() in /nas/content/live/asktherabbi/wp-content/themes/Ask Me Child 2019-05-20/question-comments.php:44 Stack trace: #0 /nas/content/live/asktherabbi/wp-includes/comment-templ ate.php(1532): require() #1 /nas/content/live/asktherabbi/wp-content/themes/Ask Me Child 2019-05-20/single-question.php(999): comments_templ ate('/question-comme...') #2 /nas/content/live/asktherabbi/wp-includes/templ ate-loader.php(106): include('/nas/content/li...') #3 /nas/content/live/asktherabbi/wp-blog-header.php(19): require_once('/nas/content/li...') #4 /nas/content/live/asktherabbi/index.php(17): require('/nas/content/li...') #5 {main} thrown in /nas/content/live/asktherabbi/wp-content/themes/Ask Me Child 2019-05-20/question-comments.php on line 44
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 350: Nevertheless, a person can be paid a general sum for several days’ work, including Shabbat. For exampl e, the rabbi is paid a set monthly salary which includes his Shabbat duties. Similarly, a babysitter who works during the week, and also on Shabbat, should be paid a set fee for the week. The same with a cantor.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 356: I love the Shabbat experience (especially the candle lighting and the kiddush), but why so many restrictions? No driving, no shopping, no pl aying music, no chatting on the phone — you're not even allowed to check your e-mail! Sounds more like a prison than a day of rest. Why not just focus on the beautiful rituals and the restful atmosphere? I'd love to start keeping Shabbat, but all that "don't do this" and "don't do that" is a real turn-off...
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 360: To experience Shabbat rest, we need to cease work — that is, cease all creative involvement with our world. Plowing a field, for exampl e, constitutes creative involvement with the world. Converting matter into energy (which is what we do every time we press down on the gas pedal or turn on an electrical appl iance) constitutes creative involvement with the world. If you're creatively involving, you're not resting. This may sound to you like pilpul, which it admittedly is.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 33: Våga drömma play:none">Limaista
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 45: 90% kirjoista, niiden kirjoittajista ja niissä esiintyvistä henkilöistä pl us niiden vääntyneistä siveellisistä pönötyxistä on yxinomaan ärsyttäviä. Olen saanut näistä apinoista aika tarpeexeni, sie hängen mir zum Hals heraus.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 110: Är utbildningsnivån på FB så låg att ingen stött på eländet på Handels? Ni kan vara glada isåfall. Något mer osammanhängande, omoget, mediokert och självcentrerat är nog svårt att hitta. Man får trösta sig med att om några år så är han ersatt i rampl juset av någon ännu djävligare, och själv har han förhoppningsvis då fått psykofarmaka.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 122: Allt ska expl odera, allt ska vara MER, allt ska vara ROCKENROLL! Han är globalekonomins Marilyn Manson.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 126: Michael Dahlén vill ha en maxad värld med maxade uppl evelser och han ville göra ett maxat Sommar för att illustrera sin poäng.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 133: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 134: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 138: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 142: Du vet, vi har dessa genpoolskvalster runtomkring oss med syftet att införliva en del anomalier, i annat fall skulle allt bli för bra/ likartad tillväxt. Likriktning kan leda till att arten Homo Handelsis äter upp sig själva... och vilka skulle då uppl ysa oss om självklarheter? Han tuggar ju redan nu på det som andra, Milton Friedman t.ex., spytt upp och lämnat på den akademiska mattan som en intorkad hårboll. Men, med användandet av en viss sannolikhelveteskalkyl så står Dasen Dahlén kvar när de andra faller, Fursten behöver Jesus. Han blev ju inte långlivad men snacka om att boosta myten om ekonomi som religion.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 146: Att leverera pl attityder klarar i princip vem som helst av och här vimlar det av dem. Problemet är att det är svårt att få uppmärksamhet och kunna ta betalt för självklarheter om man inte sticker ut rejält i mediebruset. Den här snubben tillämpar bara Bert Karlssons marknadsföringsstrategi på produkten (sig själv) om än med en modern urban popmodetvist. Hade inte Handels gett honom en första scen att verka på så hade han säkert dykt upp i media på något annat sätt. Media letar alltid efter något som sticker ut oavsett om de tillför något av värde.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 162: The rise of modern, centralized states in Europe by the early 19th century heralded the end of Jewish judicial autonomy and social seclusion. Their communal corporate rights were abolished, and the process of emancipation and acculturation that followed quickly transformed the values and norms of the public. Estrangement and apathy toward Judaism were rampant. The process of communal, educational and civil reform could not be restricted from affecting the core tenets of the faith. The new academic, critical study of Judaism (Wissenschaft des Judentums) soon became a source of controversy. Rabbis and scholars argued to what degree, if at all, its findings could be used to determine present conduct. The modernized Orthodox in Germany, like rabbis Isaac Bernays and Azriel Hildesheimer, were content to cautiously study it while stringently adhering to the sanctity of holy texts and refusing to grant Wissenschaft any say in religious matters. On the other extreme were Rabbi Abraham Geiger, who would emerge as the founding father of Reform Judaism, and his supporters. They opposed any limit on critical research or its practical appl ication, laying more weight on the need for change than on continuity.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 165: Besides working for the civic betterment of local Jews and educational reform, he displ ayed keen interest in Wissenschaftskäse. But Frankel was always cautious and deepl y reverent towards tradition, privately writing in 1836 that "the means must be appl ied with such care and discretion... that forward progress will be reached unnoticed, and seem inconsequential to the average spectator."
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 199: Micael har i intervjuer berättat om det utanförskap han uppl evde när han växte upp och blev mobbad. Året efter att han gått in i väggen tog han tjänstledigt från sin professur på Handelshögskolan i Stockholm och gav bland annat ut romanen ”Livet på Mars” som handlar om en utomjording som känner sig främmande på jorden. Just som Liza "Annika Bengzon" Marklund i Piitime, va?
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 202: ploads/2020/12/50361eb8-621b-405f-9db4-e2e6fad569b6.jpg?resize=233%2C300&ssl=1" />
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 219: Toms bästa tips för att handskas med att vara HSP, så man inte blir överväldigad är att vara noga med att ta pauser då man tar det lugnt och koppl ar av med barnen. Han rekommenderar även Mindfulness, Sinfulness och liknande tekniker.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 236: America has faced many fiscal and economic crises in the last decade: the housing bubble and the financial crisis, stagnant economic growth and high unempl oyment, record budget deficits and unsustainable debt. What do these problems have in common? They were all caused by statists!
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 240: As Michael Dahlen shows in Ending Big Government: The Essential Case for Capitalism and Freedom, the only rational alternative to statists and the only antidote to the problems they cause is free-market, laissez-faire capitalism. This is the system of limited government, the system of economic and political freedom. It is a system that has created more wealth, offered more opportunity, and lifted more rich peopl e out of the dredges of poverty than any other system.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 242: Yet it is relentlessly demonized. We are told that businessmen pay “starvation wages,” that the rich get richer while the poor get poorer, and that the free market is impractical—prone to crises, depressions, mass unempl oyment, and coercive monopolies. Michael Dahlen dispels these and many other myths. He shows that a system of free markets and limited government is not only practical; he shows that it is moral, as it is the only system that recognizes each egoistic individual’s inalienable right to his own lifelong earnings.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 276: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/d3/Jan-Joosten-van_Lodensteyn-and-William-Adams-with-Ship-Liefde-first-encounter-in-Kyushu-Japan-1600.png" width="80%" />
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 299: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/11/Tokugawa_Ieyasu2.JPG" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 301: Shogun piti Adamsista ja nimitti hänet dipl omaatti- ja kauppaneuvonantajaksi ja antoi hänelle suuria etuoikeuksia. Lopulta Adamsista tuli hänen henkilökohtainen neuvonantajansa kaikissa länsimaihin ja sivilisaatioon liittyvissä asioissa. Muutaman vuoden kuluttua Adams korvasi jesuiitta Padre João Rodriguesin Shogunin virallisena tulkkina. Kyllä isä Joaota vitutti.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 377: Missä kohen Jamesin Blackthornen seikkailut poikkeavat esikuvastansa Adamsista? No mietitään - tää on romaani, eikä pelkkä rags to riches tositarina. Ei siis riitä pelkkä (E), pitää olla paxulti myös (K) ja (F). Näyttää siinä olevan kaikenlaista nujakointia, ja aika pian on jonkin verran myös japsunaisten nussintaa (sitähän oli Aatamilla kyllä izellään). "As they spend more time together, Blackthorne comes to deepl y admire both Toranaga and (specifically) Mariko, and all three secretly become lovers." Samainen Mariko (joka on sentään vaan japsulainen nainen) silputaan smithereeneixi. "However, she and Blackthorne and the other ladies of Toranaga's "court", escape into a locked room. As the ninja prepare to blow the door open Mariko stands against the door and is killed by the expl osion." No jäähän Toranagalle vielä "Lady Anjin". Entäs moraali? "Blackthorne is torn between his growing affection for Mariko (who is married to a powerful, abusive, and dangerous samurai, Buntaro), his increasing loyalty to Toranaga, his household and consort, a "Willow world" courtesan named Kikuli, and his desire to return to the open seas aboard Erasmus so he can intercept the Black Ship fleet before it reaches Japan." Onpa hienoa: (E,F,K) konfliktoituvat! "There are other recurring themes of Eastern values, as opposed to Western values, masculine (patriarchal) values as opposed to human values, etc."
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 388: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/36/Vilna_Gaon%2C_Winograd_picture.jpg" width="20%" />
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 395: Large groups of peopl e, including many yeshivas, uphold the set of Jewish customs and rites (minhag), the "minhag ha-Gra", named after him, the which is also considered by many of his followers to be the prevailing Ashkenazi minhag in Jerusalem.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 404: His extensive expl anations are largely inscrutable to any but advanced talmudists. Actually they too don't have a clue but they keep a lid on it.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 407: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7a/Brockhaus_and_Efron_Jewish_Encyclopedia_e16_058-0.jpg/120px-Brockhaus_and_Efron_Jewish_Encyclopedia_e16_058-0.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 410: Shneur Zalman of Liadi (Hebrew: שניאור זלמן מליאדי, September 4, 1745 – December 15, 1812 O.S. / 18 Elul 5505 – 24 Tevet 5573), was an influential Lithuanian Jewish rabbi and the founder and first Rebbe of Chabad, a branch of Hasidic Judaism, then based in Liadi in Grand Duchy of Lithuania and later in the Grodno Governorate of the Russian Empire. He was the author of many works, and is best known for Shulchan Aruch HaRav, Tanya, and his Siddur Torah Or compiled according to the Nusach Ari. Zalman is a Yiddish variant of Solomon and Shneur (or Shne'or) is a Yiddish composite of the two Hebrew words "shnei ohr" (שני אור "two ears"). Shneur Zalman was a prominent (and the youngest) discipl e of Dov Ber of Mezeritch, the "Great Maggid", who was in turn the successor of the founder of Hasidic Judaism, Yisrael ben Eliezer, known as the Baal Shem Tov . He too displ ayed extraordinary talent while still a child. By the time he was eight years old, he wrote an all-inclusive commentary on the Torah based on the works of Rashi, Nahmanides and Abraham ibn Ezra.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 412: Until the age of 12, he studied under Issachar Ber in Lyubavichi (Lubavitch); he distinguished himself as a Talmudist, such that his teacher sent him back home, informing his father that the boy could continue his studies without the aid of a teacher. At the age of 12, he delivered a discourse concerning the compl icated laws of Kiddush Hachodesh, to which the peopl e of the town granted him the title "Rav". The misnagdim, on the other hand, dubbed him "Rebbe Schlemiel".
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 416: During these years, Shneur Zalman was introduced to mathematics, geometry, and astronomy by two learned brothers, refugees from Bohemia, who had settled in Liozna. One of them was also a scholar of the Kabbalah. Thus, besides mastering rabbinic literature, he also acquired a fair to medium knowledge of the sciences, philosophy, and Kabbalah. He became an adept in Isaac Luria's system of Kabbalah, and in 1764 he became a discipl e of Dov Ber of Mezeritch. In 1767, at the age of 22, he was appointed magician of Liozna, a position he held until 1801.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 430: Templ e Grandin says that the experiment needs to be repeated using a qualified shochet and knives of the correct size sharpened in the proper way.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 434: Studies done in 1994 by Templ e Grandin, and another in 1992 by Flemming Bager, showed that when the animals were slaughtered in a comfortable position they appeared to give no resistance and none of the animals attempted to pull away their head. The studies concluded that a shechita cut "probably results in minimal discomfort" because the cattle stand still and do not resist a comfortable head restraint device.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 438: Mary Templ e Grandin (born August 29, 1947) is an American scientist, academic and animal behaviorist. She is a prominent proponent for the humane treatment of livestock for slaughter and the author of more than 60 scientific papers on animal behavior. Grandin is a consultant to the livestock industry, where she offers advice on animal behavior, and is also an autism spokesperson.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 439: Grandin says that "the part of other peopl e that has emotional relationships is not part of me", and she has neither married nor had children.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 440: Grandin is one of the first autistic peopl e to document the insights she gained from her personal experience of autism. She is currently a faculty member with Animal Sciences in the College of Autism and Agricultural Sciences at Colorado State University.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 442: Templ e Grandin has worked closely with Jewish slaughterers to design more comfortable handling systems for cattle, and has said: "When the cut is done correctly, the animal appears not to feel it. Anyway I don't. From an animal-welfare standpoint, the major concern during ritual slaughter are the stressful and cruel methods of restraint (holding) that are used in some pl ants."
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 33: TÖRNI KÄRJESSÄ play:none">Maanpuolustushenkeä
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 34: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 79: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c2/T26_parola_1.jpg/250px-T26_parola_1.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 102: Tämä pl us lähes tuhat sivua lisää selittelyä olisi lähtenyt 2 egellä nimikkeellä "Bill Clinton: My life" . Ei napannut.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 107: Äidinisän kirjan Uppl evelser i finska koncentrationsläger (Federativs Forlag, Tukholma, Ruotsi, 1949) kääntämisestä suomeksi on muhinut päässäni lähes parikymmentä vuotta.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 264: Tässä maassa on uneksittava rauhanunia ase pään alla. Ei Venäjälläkään ole pasifismia. Eipä kyllä pl e fasismiakaan. Valkoiset ukrainalaiset kenraalit hävisivät vaikka länkkärit auttoivat minkä jaxoivat.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 297: ploads/2022/12/sissit-768x552.jpg.webp" />
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 384: Medeia oli kanssa Mustalta mereltä. Ovid joutui Romaniaan Jeesuxen ollessa taapero. Livia oli Augustuxen n:s vaimo, ja Salvo Montalbanon. Alkuperäinen Liviaa näytellyt sakemanninainen toi mieleen Katjan, sen venäläisen kielitieteen lehtorin, jonka sittemmin nai nenezin näköinen Juha Janhunen. Ostin kirjamessuilla 3kpl Camillerin kirjoja alkukielellä. Jaxankohan lukea.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 402: Quantum defuerat pl eno post oscula voto? Paljonko uupumaan jäi muka täysosumasta?
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 447: Peter Fagernäs on meidän ikätoveri, s. 1952, ex-kokoomusnuori ja KOPin pankinjohtaja, monen ketkun bisnesdiilin veteraani ja hirmu raharohmu. Exempl aarinen "pankinohtaja Jääskeläinen Pohjois-Savosta." Hänen äidinisänsä oli pankinjohtaja Helander ja isänisänsä tää Uno Fagernäs. Nääs nääs.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 480: The world is a wonderful, miraculous, beautiful pl ace. Just to be in it and develop software for it is a privilege.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 483: I guess your parents probably don’t judge you and are glad to have some help at home - washing the toilet and taking out the garbage and such. They probably worry much more when you don't. One little piece of advice anyway: I do suspect that to cultivate self-discipl ine is a good start. Not to pamper yourself, you stupid lout. And don't forget to take the garbage with you as you go.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 487: Indeed if I could I would rather not have any children. Was almost 30-years old when I did. The issue was the bitch of a partner I chose - not the children. Most of their childhood was compl ete misery for them but I won’t get those great years back. I kept in a good shape and whacked them well and right to the best of my ability. They are all successful adults now. They are grateful that we are not close at all these days, and I’m living and learning to be OK with that.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 493: I know all about the wrong partner…my kids mother, of all the women I had been with before her, would have been absolutely last on the list of peopl e I'd want to have kids with.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 499: Thank you for this response, I am a female, 55 years old, without my 2 children who went in a car accident. All of my life I had to deal with women compl aining about being single moms. It is really only me who is genuinely single. Plus, my own mother is toxic. I wish I wasn’t born, but I still see the beauty in this earth for software developers.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 508: Depression is terrible. I remember 27 and it sucks. I can't imagine being that age now. In this world we live in. It's no wonder he's depressed. For young peopl e it just seems hopeless, like what's the point? They can't afford a house, family of their own, secondary education, a life except being a slave to the “grind" and having a side hustle…or 5. Just be there for him. Don't tell him to cheer up, others have it worse. None of those things help. Sometimes they just have to hit rock bottom. Sometimes it's like grieving. Like Winston Churchill said, if you are in hell, just keep shoveling.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 514: When you're in a great job with great peopl e around, you tell yourself it' s all going to go worse in the end. That's a special type of bliss most peopl e don't know exists.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 517: But I have the resources and money to pay for it so that's definitely a big pl us.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 33: Kävin kirjastossa Suklaaosastossa play:none">Seiloriaiheista
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 34: ploads/2016/10/Ny-Daily-News-willy-wonka2-768x605.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 48: ploads/pirates-of-the-caribbean-johnny-depp-180935_1029_798.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 179: The pl owman homeward pl ods his weary way, Kyntäjä kotiinpäin kulkee väsyneenä tiensä,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 188: The moping owl does to the moon compl ain Moving pöllö valittaa kuulle
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 203: Or busy housewife pl y her evening care: Tai kiireinen kotiäiti hoitaa iltahoitoaan:
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 215: The short and simpl e annals of the poor. Lyhyet ja yksinkertaiset köyhien aikakirjat.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 237: But Knowledge to their eyes her ampl e page Mutta tieto heidän silmissään hänen runsaasti sivuaan
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 252: Th' appl ause of list'ning senates to command, Listaa senaatit käskyn suosionosoitukset,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 254: To scatter pl enty o'er a smiling land, Hajauttaakseen paljon hymyilevään maahan,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 275: Impl ores the passing tribute of a sigh. Rukoilee ohimenevää huokausta.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 278: The pl ace of fame and elegy suppl y: Kuuluisuuden ja elegian tarjontapaikka:
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 283: This pl easing anxious being e'er resign'd, Tämä miellyttävä ahdistunut olento luopui,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 294: If chance, by lonely contempl ation led, Jos sattuma, yksinäinen pohdiskelu johti,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 297: Hapl y some hoary-headed swain may say, Ehkä joku karvapäinen swairi voi sanoa,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 300: To meet the sun upon the upl and lawn. Kohtaamaan aurinkoa ylänkön nurmikolla.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 305: And pore upon the brook that babbles by. Ja huokoset purolle, joka kupl ii.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 345: Cornhillissä 26. joulukuuta 1716 syntynyt Gray oli viides Philip ja Dorothy Antrobus Grayn 12 lapsesta ja ainoa, joka selvisi lapsenkengistä. Hänen isänsä, väkivaltaisuuksiin syyllistynyt, pahoinpiteli vaimoaan; Dorothy jätti hänet jossain vaiheessa, mutta Philip uhkasi ajaa hiäntä takaa ja kostaa hiänelle, ja hiän palasi hänen luokseen. Vuosina 1725-1734 Thomas Gray osallistui Etoniin, missä hän tapasi Richard Westin ja Horace Tadpolen, voimakkaan Whig-ministerin Sir Robert Walpolen pojan. Vuonna 1734 Gray astui Peterhouse Collegeen, Cambridgen yliopistoon. Neljä vuotta myöhemmin hän jätti Cambridgen ilman tutkintoa aikoen lukea lakia Lontoon Inner Templ essä. Sen sijaan hän ja Horace Walpole purjehtivat Doverista 29. maaliskuuta 1739 Manner-kiertueelle. Kaksikko riiteli Reggiossa Italiassa toukokuussa 1741; Gray jatkoi kiertuetta yksin ja palasi Lontooseen syyskuussa. Marraskuussa 1741 Greyn isä kuoli; Grayn säilyneissä kirjeissä ei ole mainintaa tästä tapahtumasta.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 374: Muse, Contempl ation ("Oodissa keväällä") ja isä Thames herätetään heidän omaavansa profeetallisen viisauden vuoksi. Yksi profetian tehtävistä on muuttaa halu "rakkaudeksi" tai "raivotuhoisiksi intohimoiksi". Mielikuvituksen personifiointitottumus paljastaa halun omaksumat alhaiset muodot ("Kateus hiipuu, ja haalistunut hoito"), aivan kuten "Oodissa keväällä" oleva "ihmisen rotu" paljastuu hyönteiselämänä "Mietiskelyn raittiin silmälle". " Visio palvelee aina muodon paljastamista, ja Greyssä paljastettua on vähennetty, kielletty tai kielletty. Reduktiivisen tunnustamisen strategia "Oodissa keväällä" hylkää unelman halusta; strategia jättimäisten spektrimuotojen luomiseksi Eton Collegen oodissa rohkaisee pahoihin uniin, halun kääntäminen demoniseksi. Northrop Frye kuvailee jotain tämän tyyppistä toimintaa keskustelussaan Quest-Romancesta: "Käännettynä unelmatermeiksi, etsintä-romantiikka on libidon tai kaipaavan itsensä etsimistä täyttymykseen, joka vapauttaa sen todellisuuden peloista, mutta sisältää silti se todellisuus." Toteuttaminen voi vaatia, kuten Grayn tapauksessa, että suojeleva äitihahmo syrjäyttää uhkaavan naispuolisen oikeushenkilön; Siten syyllisyys haihtuu halun hylänneen tottelevaisen näyttelijän saamassa hyväksynnässä. Tämä yhteenveto kuvaa myös "Hymn to Adversity".
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 422: Aamu ja huhtikuu väistyvät tauluille, joissa esitetään surun ja lohdutuksen sukulaistoimintaa: "Hymyilee Epäonnen kulmakarvassa / Pehmeän Heijastuksen käsi voi jäljittää; / Ja surun heiton poskelle / Melankolinen armo." Alkuperäisestä kosittelusta tulee toisenlainen sitoutuminen: Suru tavoittelee ruusuista nautintoa, lohdutus lähestyy kurjuutta. "Sekoitettu muoto" on sublimoitunut seksuaalinen kiihko aamun ja huhtikuun välillä, muutettuna depersonalisoituneeksi estetiikaksi, jossa "taiteelliset riidat" ja "voima ja harmonia" syrjäyttävät viettelevän aamun, joka "Pyhällä poskella ja kuiskauksella pehmeästi / ... woo on myöhäinen kevät." Seurustelu muuttuu lohdutukseksi, ja Vicissitudesta tulee toinen hahmo, kuten Contempl ation tai Adversity, jonka suojeluksessa halu eliminoituu. Vicissitude, toisin kuin Adversity, on sukupuoleton hahmo, joka ei edusta uhkaavaa seksuaalista kuvaa. Oodi palaa toiseen paikkaan, kun pettynyt puhuja vierailee EtonissaOodi Eton Collegen kaukaisesta näkökulmastatai kun Gray palaa Cambridgeen "Hymn to Ignorance". Tässä paluu "Elegian" alkuun, "pimeyteen" ja maisemaan, jonka yli "kyntäjä kotiinpäin kulkee väsyneen tiensä". Kaikki Grayn runot ovat edistyksen runoja, matkoja, joissa haasteena on löytää jotain muuta kuin alkujen muodostamien päämäärien kiertokulkua ("Ja ne, jotka hiipivät, ja ne, jotka lentävät, / Päättävät sinne, missä alkoivat"). Grayn äiti kuoli 11. maaliskuuta 1753. 5. maaliskuuta 1756 hän muutti kadun toisella puolella olevasta Peterhouse Collegesta Pembroke Collegeen, kuulemma joidenkin opiskelijoiden hänelle tekemän pilan seurauksena. Opiskelijat, tietäen hänen tulipelkostaan, nostivat väärä hälytys. Kun Peterhousen isäntä, tohtori Law, ei onnistunut ottamaan Grayta s valituksen kepponen vakavasti, Gray "muutti" Pembroke. Kun runoilijavoittaja Colley Cibber kuoli vuonna 1757, Graylle tarjottiin paikkaa; mutta hän kieltäytyi. Heinäkuussa 1759 hän muutti Lontooseen opiskelemaan British Museumissa, joka oli avattu yleisölle tammikuussa. Joulukuussa 1761 hän palasi Cambridgeen; Lukuun ottamatta toistuvia matkoja Lontooseen, muualle Englantiin, Skotlantiin ja Walesiin, hän jäi Cambridgeen loppuelämänsä.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 424: Mr. Grayn runot (1768) sisältää kaksi käännöstä norjasta. "The Fatal Sisters" ja "The Descent of Odin" ovat profetian runoja. Ensimmäistä hallitsee se, mitä Gray esipuheessa kutsuu "kaksitoista jättimäistä hahmoa, jotka muistuttavat naisia", joiden tarkoituksena on kutoa tulevaisuuden verkko ja joiden tie vie toisen kuolleiden kentän läpi ("Kohtalon polkuina me kuljemme, / kahlaamalla throa" 'th' ensangin'd field..." Varhaisen säkeen helposti tunnistettava haluhahmo on korvattu valtavilla kauhistuttavilla muodoilla, " Mista musta, loistava piika, / Sangrida ja Hilda ", " Gondula ja Geira "." Sellaiset naiset esiintyivät ensin nimellä Contempl ation tai Adversity. He edustavat muse-äiti-kuoleman yhdistettyä identiteettiä, yhtenäistä halun ja auktoriteetin muotoa, jota kohti Grayn mielikuvitus on kulkenut.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 433: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/29/Roald_Dahl.jpg/250px-Roald_Dahl.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 439: He was born in Cairo and educated at Alleyn's School, Dulwich College, and Guys' Hospital, although he did not compl ete his studies.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 444: Of course, most readers will want to learn about Hornblower (one of the few fictional characters with a biography), where that name came from, and what mechanism the father used to develop the many characters in his novels. But who would be startled to learn that Forester pl ayed an important role in the propaganda used by the UK to encourage the US’s entrance into WW2?
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 446: Born in Cairo, Forester had a compl icated life, including imaginary parents, a secret marriage, a murder charge, and a debilitating illness. He was educated at Alleyn's School and Dulwich College in Dulwich, South London. He married Kathleen Belcher in 1926, had two sons, and divorced in 1945. His eldest son, John, was a noted cycling activist and wrote a biography of his father.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 454: Forester does reveal that the original trigger for his central character as an officer in the Royal Navy was his finding of three bound volumes of the Naval Chronicle when looking in a second-hand bookshop for some reading matter to take on a small sailboat; this, he impl ies, provided enough material for his lively subconscious to work on to ensure the eventual emergence of the Hornblower we know.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 458: Roald Dahl (13. syyskuuta 1916 – 23. marraskuuta 1990) oli brittiläinen kirjailija, runoilija, käsikirjoittaja ja hävittäjälentäjä. Dahl kirjoitti elämänsä aikana kaikkiaan 19 lastenkirjaa, yhdeksän novellikokoelmaa ja useita elokuva- ja televisiokäsikirjoituksia pl us pornoa. Dahlin tunnetuimpia kirjoja ovat Jali ja suklaatehdas sekä Matilda. Roaldilla oli sodan jälkeen varmaan jotain jimbajambaa "Hornblower" Smithin kanssa. Siihen liittyvä roman à clé on Iso kiltti jätti ja perskurkkana .
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 481: Roald Dahl's children's books are full of barely submerged misogyny, lust and violence. Roald Dahl was an unpl easant man who wrote macabre books – and yet children around the world adore them. Perhaps this shouldn’t surprise us, writes Hephzibah (Hetty) Anderson. Kids can be so cruel. Oh can we? Thanx mom! .... Oow! Oow!
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 497: During the Seven Years' War (1756-1763), Britain's ruinously expensive naval sorties against France were actually inflicting very little damage. In the specific case of the Sept 1757 Raid on Rochefort, British MP Henry Fox said it was like breaking their windows with guineas (i.e. - using and thus losing our most valuable coins as missiles, simpl y to break their glass windows).
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 521: Tiedot Pindaroksen elämästä ovat vahvasti liioiteltuja. Ne ovat pääosin peräisin melko epäluotettavista antiikin aikaisista elämäkerroista, joita on säilynyt viisi. Yksi on säilynyt Thomas Magistroksen tekemän skolian alussa. Toinen on Sudassa. Kolmas tunnetaan yleensä metrisenä elämäkertana, sillä se koostuu 35 kpl 6 metrin säkeestä.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 532: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/24/Pindar_statue.jpg/800px-Pindar_statue.jpg" width="25%" />
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 567: Quintilian described him as "by far the greatest of the nine lyric poets, in virtue of his inspired magnificence, the beauty of his thoughts and figures, the rich exuberance of his language and matter, and his rolling flood of eloquence". However, not all the ancients shared Quintilian's enthusiasm. The Athenian comic pl aywright Eupolis is said to have remarked that the poems of Pindar "are already reduced to silence by the disinclination of the multitude for elegant learning".
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 573: Like other poets of the Archaic Age, he reveals a deep sense of the vicissitudes of life and yet, unlike them, he also articulates a passionate faith in what men can achieve by the grace of the gods, most famously expressed in his conclusion to one of his Victory Odes: Creatures of a day! What is a man? What is he not? A dream of a shadow Is our mortal being. But when there comes to men A gleam of spl endour given of heaven, Then rests on them a light of glory And blessed are their days.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 606: With ruffled pl umes and flagging wing: Röyhelöillä ja lipuvalla siivellä:
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 627: The bloom of young Desire and purpl e light of Love. Nuoren kalun kukinta ja Rakkauden violetti valo.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 634: The fond compl aint, my song, disprove, Rakas valitus, lauluni, kumoaa,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 670: Left their Parnassus for the Latian pl ains. Jättivät Parnassoon latingin tasangoille.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 705: Hark, his hands thy lyre expl ore! Horatio, hänen kätensä tahtoo tutkia sun huilua!
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 712: Nor the pride, nor ampl e pinion, Ei ylpeyttä, häpyä, eikä runsasta harjaa,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 759: I'm sure you're very welcome – will you pl ease to take a slice?" Olet tervetullut maistamaan, ole hyvä, saako olla?
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 768: "I thank you, gentle sir," she said, "for what you're pl eased to say, Kiitos vaan kaveri, sanoi hiän, kauniista sanoistasi,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 778: Your robes are green and purpl e – there's a crest upon your head; Sun mekko on sinivihreä, on hieno diadeemi;
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 785: Thinking only of her brilliant eyes, and green and purpl e hue:– Ajatellen vain kirkkaita silmiään, kaunista mekkoaan;
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 798: Lewis Carroll, a notorious spider in little girls' parlour, repl aced a notorious negro minstrel song with The Mock Turtle's Song (also known as the "Lobster Quadrille"), a parody of Howitt's poem that mimics the meter and rhyme scheme and parodies the first line, as well as the subject matter, of the original, namely sugar daddy talk. Lewis was a past master in that sport.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 804: They had not gone far before they saw the Mock Turtle in the distance, sitting sad and lonely on a little ledge of rock, and, as they came nearer, Alice could hear him sighing as if his heart would break. She pitied him deepl y. `What is his sorrow?' she asked the Gryphon, and the Gryphon answered, very nearly in the same words as before, `It's all his fancy, that: he hasn't got no sorrow, you know. Come on!'
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 839: But the snail repl ied "Too far, too far!" and gave a look askance — Mutta siihen vastasi tuo etana: liian pitkälle! ja kazoi vinosti -
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 844: "What matters it how far we go?" his scaly friend repl ied. Mitä väliä menemmekö liian pitkälle, kysyi eväkäs.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 852: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/17/Will_you_walk_into_my_parlor_-_U._Keppl er_1907.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 857: In March 1920, the ICC had Eben Moody Boynton, the inventor of the Boynton Bicycle Railroad, committed as a lunatic to an asylum in Washington, D.C. Boynton's monorail electric light rail system, it was reported, had the potential to revolutionize transportation, superseding then-current train travel. ICC officials said that they had Boynton committed because he was "worrying them to death" in his promotion of the bicycle railroad. Based on his own testimony and that of a Massachusetts congressman, Boynton won release on May 28, 1920, overcoming testimony of the ICC's chief clerk that Boynton was virtually a daily visitor at ICC offices, seeking Commission adoption of his proposal to revolutionize the railroad industry. CS Forester's bicyclist son John would have appl auded Boynton's invention.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 863: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 881: Down to the bar at the pl ace I'm at Hotlan baariin vähän pilkkimään
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 896: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/05/Korinnabywilliambrodie.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 914: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/9/90/Martin_Litchfield_West.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 33: THIS SUCKS play:none">Ylimakeaa
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 34: ploads/2020/09/6.-Pablo-Neruda-1280x640.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 52: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 53: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 131: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6c/Sappho_and_Erinna_in_a_Garden_at_Mytilene.jpg/288px-Sappho_and_Erinna_in_a_Garden_at_Mytilene.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 136: Today, it is generally accepted that Sappho´s poetry portrays homoerotic feelings: as Sandra Boehringer puts it, her works "clearly celebrate eros between women". Toward the end of the twentieth century, though, some scholars began to reject the question of whether or not Sappho was a lesbian – Glenn Most wrote that Sappho herself "would have had no idea what peopl e mean when they call her nowadays a homosexual", André Lardinois stated that it is "nonsensical" to ask whether Sappho was a lesbian, and Page duBois calls the question a "particularly obfuscating debate". WTF? Pelottaako äijiä ajatus pillua lipsuvasta Psapfasta? Vai onko ne vaan mustasukkiaisia?
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 138: One longstanding suggestion of a social role for Sappho is that of "Sappho as schoolmistress". At the beginning of the twentieth century, the German classicist Ulrich von Wilamowitz-Moellendorff posited that Sappho was a sort of schoolteacher, to "expl ain away Sappho´s passion for her ´girls´" and defend her from accusations of homosexuality. The view continues to be influential, both among scholars and the general public, though more recently the idea has been criticised by historians as anachronistic and has been rejected by several prominent classicists as unjustified by the evidence. In 1959, Denys Page, for exampl e, stated that Sappho´s extant fragments portray "the loves and jealousies, the pl easures and pains, of Sappho and her companions"; and he adds, "We have found, and shall find, no trace of any formal or official or professional relationship between them... no trace of Sappho the principal of an academy." Toisin kuin Ailin kohalla, hehe.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 187: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0f/Jussi_Aro.jpg/800px-Jussi_Aro.jpg" style="float:left;width:10%;padding:1em" />
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 194: Raamatunkäännöskomitean jäsen Aro oli vuodesta 1974 ja Vanhan Testamentin käännösyksikön puheenjohtajana vuodesta 1976. Suomen Pipl iaseura julkaisi Aron suomentamana Psalmit nykysuomeksi 1973. Aro oli suomentamassa ensimmäisen kerran Koraania Armas Salosen kanssa.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 227: Totinen kristillisyys perustuu keskiajan mystiikan edustajien kirjoituksiin, joita Arndt muokkasi luterilaisen ortodoksian katsomusten mukaisiksi, saavuttaen melkoista synergiaa. Näiden joukossa on muun muassa Theologia deutsch (suom. Kirja täydellisestä elämästä), jonka uuden painoksen Arndt toimitti. Totisen kristillisyyden kolme ensimmäistä kirjaa käsittelee sielun kehitystä Jumalan tuntemiseen. Siinä kuvastuvat mystiikan kolme vaihetta: puhdistautuminen (purgatio), valaistuminen (illuminatio) ja yhdistyminen Jumalaan (unio mystica). Neljännessä kirjassa Arndt kehittelee luonnon teologiaa, jonka lähtökohtia ovat uuspl atonismi ja Paracelsuksen ajattelu.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 231: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/35/Henrik_Renqvist.jpg" style="float:left;width:10%;padding:1em" />
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 246: G. O. Waseniuksen jälkimaine perustuu paljolti hänen nimeään kantaneeseen, Helsingin Espl anadilla vuoteen 1969 asti toimineeseen kirjakauppaan. Omana aikanaan hänet tunnettiin myös kustantajana, jonka julkaisema Helsingfors Tidningar -lehti sai suuren suosion. Vanhemmilla päivillään hän luopui niin kirjakaupasta kuin kirjapainostakin, osti tupakka- ja paperitehtaan sekä keskittyi maanviljelyyn.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 262: G. O. Waseniuksen kolmesta avioliitosta syntyi 12 lasta, joista 7 saavutti aikuisiän. Adolf Fredrikistä tuli Tervakosken paperitehtaan omistaja ja kehittäjä sekä moninkertainen valtiopäiväedustaja ja Valfrid Vaseniuksesta Suomen ja Pohjoismaiden kirjallisuudenhistorian professori sekä niin sanotun Valvojan ryhmän perustajäsen. Isänsä lehden menestyksekkäästä toimittajasta Z. Topeliuksesta kirjoittamassaan massiivisessa, monituhatsivuisessa elämäkerrassa Valfrid Vasenius kuvasi samalla eläytyvästi isänsä sukupolven suuria murroksia. Jossain määrin paradoksaalista on se, että G. O. Waseniuksen jälkimaine helsinkiläisten keskuudessa perustuu paljolti kuuluisaan Waseniuksen kirjakauppaan, joka toimi Espl anadilla vuoteen 1969 saakka. Kaupan nimi jäi elämään, vaikka sen perustaja myi kirjakauppansa pois jo 1851.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 277: Mutta kun Paula ei tahdokaan armonpullaa, Marke on tosi pettynyt. Kaikenhan pitäisi mennä Marken mielen mukaan. Vitun millimolli. Izepäinen simppu. Eno on hieman lihava, se tulee sanotuxi sivulauseessa. Saima ojentaa: Ei Annelin tarvize luulla että sellainen joka on vajonnut kotiapulaisexi ei voisi olla kotoisin hyvästä ja arvokkaasta perheestä. Saiman pitää joskus kertoa, Anneli vastasi siihen. Paremmalla ajalla. Kiinnos. Teuvo on selvinnyt Anglian romusta ja jakaa Paula-tytölle kompl imangia. Paula punastuu korvannipukoita myöden. Adonaasi solanaat! Rakkautta multa saat!
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 334: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 380: Anna Shirley, onko se se kanadalainen punapäinen Anne e:llä? Niin varmaankin. Mutta oliko Aili lukenut Pollyannansa? Kyllä varmasti, täähän on ihan evidentti pl agiaatti siitä. Paizi että Pollyanna ei liene ollut naisiin menevä, toisin kuin pikku Marquetta.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 464: Olit yksinäinen lämmin tunneli. Luotani pakenivat ilolinnut Anna minun levittää sinut cospl ay sisäkön asussa.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 504: Sinun obeesi vartalosi antautuu käsivarsilleni ja kaukana värisevät siniset pl aneetat”.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 586: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 590: Pablo Neruda , alkuperäiseltä nimeltään Ricardo Eliecer Neftalí Reyes Basoalto (1904-1972) oli Nobel-sertifioitu chileläinen runoilija, dipl omaatti ja kommunistipuolueen poliitikko. Nerudaa pidetään yhtenä 1900-luvun tärkeimmistä runoilijoista ja latinalaisamerikkalaisista senaattoreista, lukuunottamatta Vargas Llosaa ja Pinochetia.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 596: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/45/Jan_Neruda_02.jpg" style="float:left;width:10%;padding:1em" />
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 657: z nichžse i Země spl etla. Samoista ainexista.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 700: Under the influence of the free market-oriented "Chicago Boys", Pinochet's military government impl emented economic liberalization following neoliberalism, including currency stabilization, removed tariff protections for local industry, banned trade unions, and privatized social security and hundreds of state-owned enterprises. Some of the government properties were sold below market price to politically connected buyers, including Pinochet's own son-in-law. The regime used censorship of entertainment as a way to reward supporters of the regime and punish opponents. These policies produced high economic growth, but critics state that economic inequality dramatically increased and attribute the devastating effects of the 1982 monetary crisis on the Chilean economy to these policies.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 748: Desnuda eres tan simpl e como una de mis manos: lisa, terrestre, mínima, redonda, transparente. Desnuda eres delgada como el trigo desnudo. Desnuda eres pequeña como una de tus uñas: curva, sutil, rosada hasta que nace el día y te metes en el subterráneo del mundo
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 855: Antes de interesarse por la psicología, primero estudió derecho en la City College de Nueva York (CCNY). Tras casarse con Berta Goodman, su prima mayor, se mudó Wisconsin para asistir a la universidad de esa ciudad. Fue aquí donde comenzó a estudiar psicología. Trabajó con Harry Harlow, famoso por sus experimentos con crías de mono y el comportamiento del apego. Tras graduarse y doctorarse en esta discipl ina, volvió a Nueva York para trabajar con E.L. Thorndike en la Universidad de Columbia, donde empezó a interesarse en la investigación experimental de la sexualidad humana. En este periodo de su vida, comenzó a dar clases en el Brooklyn College y entró en contacto con muchos psicólogos europeos que llegaban a Estados Unidos, por ejempl o, Adler o Fromm.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 864: Si el psicoanálisis freudiano veía a la persona desde sus conductas problemáticas y el conductismo visualizaba a la personas como seres pasivos, es decir, que no tenían demasiadas opciones de influir en el entorno. La visión de Carl Rogers y el humanismo, en cambio, era totalmente distinta, porque el ser humano es visto como un individuo activo y dueño de su propia realización. Para Rogers, una persona que presta atención al proceso de valoración orgánica es una persona pl enamente funcional o autorrealizada.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 868: La persona que es pl enamente funcional, es decir, más sana, cuando posee una serie de características. Son las siguientes:
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 870: Vivencia existencial: Las personas con apertura a la experiencia tienen más posibilidades de vivir en pl enitud.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 887: En cierto modo, el modo en el que un individuo enfoque su autorrealización se corresponderá al tipo de personalidad que manifieste en su día a día. Eso impl ica que para Maslow la personalidad está relacionada con los aspectos motivacionales que tienen que ver con los objetivos y las situaciones que vive cada ser humano; no es algo estático que permanezca en el interior de la cabeza de las personas y se manifieste unidireccionalmente, de adentro hacia afuera, tal y como podría criticarse de algunas concepciones reduccionistas y deterministas de este fenómeno psicológico.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 889: Las impl icaciones de esto son claras: para estudiar la personalidad hay que conocer también el contexto en el que habitan las personas y el modo en el que este responde a las necesidades motivacionales de los individuos. Centrarse simpl emente en administrar varios test para obtener una puntuación no nos da una visión acertada sobre esto, ya que se parte de un sesgo al considerar que la personalidad es lo que pueda ser captado por estas pruebas de recogida de datos. Se trata de un punto de vista parecido al que apl ican al ámbito de las capacidades mentales psicólogos como Howard Gardner y Robert J. Sternberg, críticos con la concepción psicométrica de la inteligencia.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 925: Maslow es famoso por su teoría de la Pirámide de Necesidades porque, según él, las necesidades siguen una jerarquía, de más básicas a más compl ejas, y su pirámide está construida por cinco niveles.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 932: Necesidades de de seguridad: seguridad física, empl eo, ingresos...
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 941: Las necesidades han de ir cubriéndose para poder aspirar al nivel superior. Por ejempl o, si no tenemos las necesidades fisiológicas cubiertas no podemos aspirar a las necesidades de afiliación. En el nivel superior se encuentran las necesidades de autorrealización. Es esta jerarquía la que según Maslow marcaba el modo en el que la personalidad se adapta a las circunstancias, dependiendo de cada situación vivida. Se trata, en definitiva, de una concepción de la personalidad que abarca aspectos psicológicos muy extensos y que va más allá del enfoque psicométrico que dominaba en su época.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 951: La teoría de la personalidad de Roger Rabbit es un ejempl o de este optimismo vital llevado a la psicología y la filosofía. Veamos en qué consiste esta teoría.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 953: La persona, según el humanismo, es una pirsona pirsonalmente. Ciertas corrientes de la psicología han estado asociadas a una visión pesimista del ser humano. Por ejempl o, el psicoanálisis de Sigmund Freud presenta una expl icación de la psique en la que los deseos inconscientes y su choque con las normas sociales gobiernan nuestro comportamiento, y el conductismo norteamericano de 1950 habia sido acusado de presentar a las personas como máquinas que reaccionan ante estímulos externos.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 968: La personalidad de la personas altamente funcional es, según Roger, muy abierta a la experiencia, en un sentido ampl io. No adopta una actitud defensiva por defecto ante lo desconocido, sino que prefiere expl orar nuevas posibilidades. Es por eso que este tipo de personalidad se define por la aceptación de las emociones asociadas a lo que se está viviendo, la no evitación de las "emociones negativas" y la adopción de actitudes receptivas ante situaciones que no son claramente peligrosas.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 971: Esta característica tiene que ver con la tendencia a asumir que es uno mismo quien ha de otorgar sentido a las experiencias que se viven en cada momento, a través de un proceso de creación de significado. De este modo, se deja que el modo de vivir el día a día sea espontáneo, creativo, sin intentar que todo lo que se percibe encaje a la fuerza en esquemas preconcebidos. El estilo de vida asociado a este tipo de personalidad, para Roger Rabbit, se caracteriza por evitar la tendencia a prejuzgar. No se analiza el presente como algo que debe ser expl icado totalmente por las vivencias
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 972: del pasado, sino que se vive pl enamente, fuyando las convenciones psicologicas, bebendo cerveza y jodendo mulieres.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 1018: ple.com/profiles/images/carl-rogers-2.jpg" width="40%"/>
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 34: Kummastuxen avonainen ovi play:none">Sanoinkuvaamatonta
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 45: ple.com/profiles/images/wayne-dyer-3.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 50: Wayne W. Dyer on izehoitopersoona, joka on tullut mainituxi toisaalla esimerkkinä ESFP-persoonallisuudesta. ESFP (extroverted sensing feeling perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Inventory (MBTI) test. ESFPs operate from the principl e that “all the world’s a stage” — and they want to be the stars. ESFP on realistinen sopeutuja ihmissuhteissa. ESFP on jenkein ja ämmämäisin tyypeistä: öykkäri ketku touho ääliö. Tai positiivisemmin, "Free-spirited and fun-loving peopl e persons" kuten Kinsella. ESFPs are enthusiastic about having new experiences and meeting new peopl e. They are generally warm and adaptable realists who go with the flow. ESFP authors include Tony Robbins , Wayne Dyer, Deepak Chopra , Bill Clinton , and Paulo "Kani" Coelho . Learn more about how ESFPs write somewhere else. Eli tämä paasaus keskittyy vain Wile E. Coyoteen alias Wayne W. Dyeriin.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 52: Wayne Walter Dyer (10. toukokuuta 1940 – 29. elokuuta 2015) oli amerikkalainen itseapukirjailija ja motivoiva puhuja. Dyer suoritti kasvatustieteen pikkudipl omin ohjauksessa ja neuvonnassa mukaansa nimitetyssä Wayne State Universityssä vuonna 1970. Uransa alkuvaiheessa hän työskenteli lukion ohjausneuvojana ja jatkoi menestyksekkään yksityisen terapiakäytännön suorittamista. Hänestä tuli suosittu neuvonantajakoulutuksen professori St. Johnin yliopistossa (joku muukin oli äskettäin sieltä valmistunut, kukahan se oli?), jossa kirjallinen agentti lähestyi häntä laittamaan ideansa kirjamuotoon. Tuloksena oli hänen ensimmäinen kirjansa, Your Eroneous Zones (1976), yksi kaikkien aikojen myydyimmistä kirjoista, jota on tähän mennessä myyty arviolta 100 miljoonaa kappaletta. Jopa huomattavasti enemmän kuin ruozalaisia dekkaristeja, mutta vähemmän kuin Pauli Kanin pakinoita.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 71: Tässä yhteydessä relevantti merkitys on 2). Löysin vaihtojyrsijöiden hyllystä espanjankielisenä Waynen teoxen Nuevos pensamientos para una vida mejor: la sabiduria del tao ja päätin tutustua samassa hötäkässä sekä Dyeriin että Daoon. Senverran hengellistä fuusiosafkaa oli tarjona että piti tutustua: kiinalaisia ajatuxia kaljusta jenkkipäästä latinojen matukielellä. Espanja on muutenkin ajankohtainen kielenä, pitihän Jöns mulle puheen simpl ified espanjaxi 70-vuotispäivänä. Tosin se koski enemmän Jeesusta ja Jönsiä kuin päivänsankaria.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 74: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/07/Tao.svg/375px-Tao.svg.png" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 84: Toisaalta dao sisältää tietynlaisen dualismin. Hurraa! huutaa Vaakku ja takoo selkään Cartesiusta Bergsonia ja denimhousuista Jamesin Billiä. Vaihtoehdothan tässä ovat monismi, dualismi, kolmiyhteisyys, pl uralismi ja sexiturismi. Esimerkkinä taolaisesta dualismista käytetään savesta valmistettua kuppia: ”Astia muovataan savesta, mutta tyhjä tila tekee astian hyödylliseksi. Ovet ja ikkunat veistetään huonetta tehdessä, mutta tyhjästä tilasta johtuu huoneen hyödyllisyys. Sen vuoksi käyttämällä sitä, mikä on, hyödytään siitä, mitä ei ole.” Eli siis mitä? Tyhjästä on kuin onkin hyvä nyhjästä! Täysi kuppi ja tyhjä pää, tyhjä kuppi ja täysi pää, kylä lähtee niillä tää! hihkuvat kiinalaiset runoilijajuopot. Äläs läiski tiuskaisee Bergson. Notably, I contend that in my third book, Creative Evolution, I overcome both dualism and monism by removing their contradiction through a durational or slanted approach to Being.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 99: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/17/Yin_yang.svg/800px-Yin_yang.svg.png" width="10%" />
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 110: Leo Tolstoy was deepl y influenced by Taoist philosophy, and wrote his own interpretation of Wu Wei in his piece Non-Activity. Pekka Ervasti on suomentanut koko paskan muiden länkkärien käännöxistä, sanoen esipuheessa:
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 126: Elige un aspecto de tu vida para aprender a liberarte de determinado apego decidiendo parar. Por ejempl o. decide irte de la carnicería diez minutos antes de haber terminado de comprar todo lo que te apetecía, o deja de comprar algun capricho que no esté en tu lista de la compra. En el trabajo, abstente de tomar otr taza decafé o de escribir un e-mail privado más.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 128: Dedica un día a la comida. Aprecia la inteligencia misteriosa que creó los alimentos para que te mantuvieras sano y disfrutaras, y da las gracias por ello. Tienes la ocasión de expl orar conscientemente tu relación con la comida al ir al supermercado, al cocinar, al invitar a tus amigos a cenar, cuando almuerzas en un restaurante o cuando te tomas un aperitivo o unas palomitas de maiz en el cine. Considéralo como una parte del eterno ciclo del Tao, y permanece en tu propia utopía.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 161: Don’t you suppose little Jewish boys got those commandments drummed into their heads repeatedly? Wouldn’t you expect the boys would ask questions about that commandment, just as little boys ask questions today? What does that mean? Does that mean I cannot kill a mosquito? Or a fish? Their teacher would remind them that animals could be killed for food and for sacrifice in the templ e.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 175: I am sure, as you probably are too, that there were Jewish girls who got pregnant outside of marriage. It is no stretch of the imagination that Roman soldiers could have raped them. Since men are men, I do not doubt that incest existed in Jesus’ community. But Jesus had nothing at all to say about these things. The only exampl es we have are of his being aware of adultery and prostitution. But there is no mention of abortion to handle rape or incest. It is far more likely that if a girl was pregnant, the solution was to marry her off quickly. We have the exampl e of Jesus’ mother Mary being married quickly to Joseph when she was found to be pregnant. I suspect other parents would do the same.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 317: Jeg har lidd av alvorlig endometriose, skriver hun blant annet. Hun forteller om symptomene og hva hun har oppl evd. Sykdommen går i korthet ut på at vev som dét i livmorens slimhinner også vokser andre steder. Det kan være i livmorens muskellag, eller helt utenfor livmoren. Det blør derfor jevnlig, altså der det ikke skal blø. Inni magen, liksom.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 367: Luin vähän lisää taaxepäin. Nähtävästi toi Vetelys kosti Aarnen katkenneen lasikuitusuxen sille ökyrikkaalle luistelupipojäbälle vielä kymmenien vuosien kuluttua. Toivottavasti saatiin se Jan Moring edes hengiltä. Mutta kun Anne Holtista on kysymys niin varmaan ei. En ole varma jaxanko lukea väliintulevia sivuja, kyllä tää on niin ummehtunutta norskisälää. Feikki filmikässäri textin keskellä on tupl a yököttävää.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 379: Tuotantokausia oli kokonaista 11 vuosina 2010-2022. The Walking Dead takes pl ace after the onset of a worldwide zombie apocalypse. The zombies, referred to as "walkers", shamble towards living humans and other creatures to eat them, saying "brains... brains... " They are attracted to noise, such as gunshots, and to bad smells, such as humans. Sankari on seriffi, jonka vaimo on lori. Lori on hässinyt Shanea jonka seriffi joutuu sixi tappamaan izepuolustuxexi. Non-zombieista tulee myös kannibaaleja. Jeesus käy kauppaa Hilltop Marketissa. Seriffin porukat kuitenkin listii vapahtajat ja raadonsyöjät. Paha nainen Alfasusi tekee pahoja. Paha kuvernööri Pamela koittaa uhrata rotinkaiset. Joku Daryl lähtee ezimään seriffiä ja sen uutta panopuuta Michonnea, joka on nykerönenäinen neekerinaaras jolla on katana. Siihen sarja päättyy. Selmalla on työpöydällä arvokas (lue kallis) Michonnefiguuri.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 400: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 438: Elise oli ostanut 12,9 3/4 tuumaisen Pro version. (Vastenmielistä kerskakonsumerismia ja tuoteasemointia. Paljonkohan tästäkin Appl e mainonnasta rapsahti Anne Holtin tilille?) Elisa oli muina miehinä ottanut pädin ja lähtenyt baanalle. "Avatessaan Safarin. Find My iPhone." Oxettavaa!
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 451: Älä kerro tätä eteenpäin. Tää on ilmeisesti ollut Annen mielilauseita. Se on aivan lyömätön juorukello, niinkuin naiset yleensä. Selma ei osaa sanoa mitä se pitää Morellista. Lyön vaikka Pepsi Max korillisen vetoa että se päätyy vielä Janin kanssa pukille. Sillä Jan on ökyrikas, eli E pl us F. (Juonipaljastus: olin väärässä.)
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 462: Edellä on jonkin verran sätitty rekkalesbo Anne Holtin Selma Falck-krimipl äjäystä ja ihan aiheesta. Siltä pohjalta ei ehkä yllätä, että se on maistunut norskien viikinkinazivirkaveljille pikku Tanskassa:
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 473: "Anne Holt har med dette første bind i en ny serie for alvor lagt spor ud til endnu en rigtigt spændende række gode krimier. Begyndelsen er under alle omstændigheder forrygende spændende - og som forventet ud fra mine opl evelser med Anne Holts øvrige bøger også rigtigt godt skruet sammen samt velskrevet." Krimifan.dk, 5 af 5 hjerter
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 475: "...forfriskende original med en antiheltinde, man kun kan holde af; som har hjertet på rette pl ads og tager sine velfortjente tæsk med oprejst pande." Søndag, 6 af 6 stjerner
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 480: Hvad Iaver en pæn pige som dig et sted som dette? What's a nice girl like you doing in a pl ace like this? Tää pæn on ilmeisesti sama kuin hiihtopipojen sana pen.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 603: Mutta mixi? Mikä oli motina? Eiköhän kyse ole pettämisestä veikkaan. Olisiko uhri jäänyt jopa kiinni itse teossa joten uhreja voisi olla jopa 2 kpl . Tai sitten Vicky myöntänyt pikkujouluissa tapahtuneen syrjähypyn josta lekuri riemastui. En usko tähän liittyvän tällä kertaa neekereitä tai muita ählyjä.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 635: Mitä motiiviin tulee niin voin hyvin kuvitella että kaveri on hintelästä olemuksestaan johtuen joutunut nuorena kärsimään parisuhdemarkkinoilla. Nuoret naiset etsii ensisijaisesti alfa-uroksia ja jos on kovin hiiri, niin eihän se flaksi käy. Iän ja varallisuuden karttuessa petsit toki parantuvat huimasti (varsinkin kun moni nuoruuden kilpakumppani on sittemmin pl ösähtänyt sinivalaaksi ja viettää aikansa lähiöräkälöissä), mutta traumoista ei noin vain pyristellä eroon, vaikka olisi miten alan ammattilainen.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 39: Kakspl us
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 40: Suku on pahin play:none">Sukuvihaa
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 108: 5. Care for older peopl e costs much more
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 111: 9. Fewer older peopl e are getting help with social care
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 134: Guan Moye (simpl ified Chinese: 管谟业; traditional Chinese: 管謨業; pinyin: Guǎn Móyè; born 17 February 1955) on toistaisexi ainoa aito viirusilmä kiinalainen nobelisti, länsimaisittain vaan Mo Yan, jonka romaanin Punainen durra kahden luvun pohjalta on elokuvakin, nim. Punainen pelto (1987). Länsimaissa Mo Yania on verrattu muun muassa Franz Kafkaan ja Joseph Helleriin. Yhteiskunnallisia kysymyksiä kuvatessaan hän käyttää maagisen realismin keinoja.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 158: Fante and Joyce raised four children in Malibu, California, including Dan Fante, an author and pl aywright who died in 2015.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 164: This is not a movie for the masses. It is, however, a small film about real life hardships and their tragic consequences. While the dialogue and careful pacing befits the original novel, the film sometimes drags because of it. Towne has not given us the great American love story, but he has presented us with a captivating view of 1933 Los Angeles and a tale of romance that involves us in the pl ight of the characters.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 167: ploads/2022/11/2022-GEORGIA-SENATE-RUNOFF-ELECTION-800x471.png" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 171: Ballonki pamahti ja lapsi kuoli Espoossa, Jorviin ei huolittu ja Helsinkiin ei päästetty. Mene vaikka Selloon soppailemaan. Espoo on Suomen syvin reikä. Paskaläjät uiskentelee pinnalle apinoiden pl aneetalla.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 197: Pål fick stå tillbaka. En dag hade Gunilla lovat honom dyrt och heligt att de skulle ta sig till biblioteket där det visades film. Pål var i sjuårsåldern då, Boel fyra. På vägen dit kastar sig Boel pl ötsligt ur vagnen och hamnar i en lerpöl. De får vända hemåt igen. Besvikelsen är tung, och när Pål sen sitter på köksgolvet säger han: ”Jag önskar att Boel var död.” Han var inte ensam därom.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 204: ploads/The-Addams-Family-Cartoon-post.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 215: Raska på, Alfons Åberg och åtskilliga Alfons-böcker presenterar folk som är livligt engagerade. Man ska bygga målbur, ordna kalas, storhandla, göra kojor, uppfinna linbana. Barn som vuxna är igång. Alla har sina projekt. Då faller lätt orden: jag ska bara… (Numera offentligt nyttjad Alfons- repl ik i riksdagen, vid gudstjänster, på styrelsemöten.) Jo, det är negativt som undanflykt och ursäkt. Men positivt för att… det är så mänskligt. Sådana är vi! Kanske är det rentav människans bästa sida –förmågan att bli entusiastisk, engagerad, skapande? Det kan inte djuren. Utom i brunst. Vi termitaporna är i brunst hela tiden.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 223: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 230: pload/c_crop,x_0,y_0,w_1732,h_973/w_1200,h_675,ar_1.7768679631525077,dpr_1,c_fill/q_auto:eco,f_auto,fl_lossy/v1658388793/39-98459362d900eab9b3d" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 239: Har du ett blödande hjärta - gör då karriär som bankir eller börsmäklare, i stället för att ägna vå ditt liv åt att jobba som vårdare, läkare eller direkt inom hjälparbete. Det lukrativa, möjligen etiskt tvivelaktiga jobbet du gör skulle ju hur som helst ha utförts av "någon annan", eventuellt mindre givmild person. Förträng eventuella samvetskval, se till att tjäna storkovan. Använd sedan ditt kapital (eller intäkter i alla fall) för att rädda världen, eller åtminstone så många liv som pl ånboken tillåter. Vem vet: sen kan du känna dig en smula som Oskar Schindler.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 241: Nu har det visat sig att kryptogossens frikostighet var en rökridå, som förmodligen dolde ett enda stort bedrägeri. Hans föräldrar är båda juridikprofessorer vid Stanford, specialiserade på beskattning, etik och bolagsstyrning. Äppl et föll inte långt från trädet. Bankman-Fried övertygade sin publik genom att snacka perfekt societetsbullshit, samtidigt som han levde ett extrvagant liv i Bahamas, utom räckhåll för lagens långa arm.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 247: Hur som helst har effektiv altruism slagit igenom på bred front bland världens allra mest välbeställda. Precis till denna grupp riktar sig filosofin. Vilken mångmiljardär vill inte få bekräftelse på att det under täckmanteln av att en vacker dag kunna "ge" ännu mer vore legit med skattepl anering, eller att ständigt eftersträva en större förmögenhet?
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 261: I sin mest vulgära form kan effektiv altruism dölja ett Messias-kompl ex, där en enskild krösus självutnämnt vill ta ansvar för hela mänsklighetens framtid och välbefinnande. Ifall vi sätter så stark tilltro till data och pengar kan vi ju lika gärna avskaffa välfärdssamhället och demokratin. Jojo, det är ju hela poängen!
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 267: Why is Quora stuffed with idiots and psychos? Because it is a representative sampl e of the ape population in the cloud.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 269: Kun narsissi kollapsoituu se räjähtää kuin supernova tai impl odeeraa ja siitä tulee black hole. Hyvinpä Nääsbö tietää miltä tuntuu olla psyko.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 306: Debby: Let them collapse and go to hell. They cry to everyone that they are a victim when they continually shoot themselves in the foot. It’s a pathetic disgusting and compl etely nauseating displ ay. I had sympathy for the devil once, I also sold my soul to the devil, and I put my feet in his fire. I will burn no more.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 312: Nicolas: God! I don't know who is the good from the bad anymore. Reading these comments sounds no better then that of what you damn. I don't see anything in the world today but self serving peopl e that excuse themselves from the hate they put into the world by the hate that the world has made them endure. It's a gross cycle that makes me fear the end is not a possibility until the sweet escape of death. Everyday I welcome that silence more and more. Life's thin vale of beauty was taken by the one I trusted most. Yet it is the true face of this world I now see. From such betrayal I am left with a world consumed by the poison it shames. I welcome anything that takes this away. I ask for nothing because nothing is exactly what I desire most.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 318: Justsum Nobodee: Sucker!!! This had to have been written by a collapsed narcissist. Poor poor narcissist, finally alone after shitting on everyone, destroying children, screaming, lying, trickery, snickering, selfish, back stabbing, manipulation, hypocrites, humiliating innocent peopl e, stealing other peopl es children. oh poor them. Bless their heart. They are the victim here. Just give them more attention.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 347: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/78/CharlesBukowski-1.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 364: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a2/Edvard_Munch_-_Vampire_%281895%29_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg/600px-Edvard_Munch_-_Vampire_%281895%29_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg"/>
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 376: De første gangene var det et helvette fordi dama bare hev seg oppå og starte, så ballene ble klemt. Men de siste gangene har hun passet på at penis peker oppover mot navelen. Når hun da starter så er det akkuratt som å runke, forhuden går frem og tilbake. Noe som er litt kjipt, for den simulerer jo på en måte onani, og det tar ikke lang tid før jeg må avslutte for å ikke komme. Noe som er litt flaut. Men om det er bra for gutter? Tja, finnes jo bedre ting, men kanskje en pl ass å starte før dere begynner å kaste av klærne.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 421: Tää homo ei saa sijoitettua pätkää netflix-laatikoihin ja on sixi aivan hukassa. Onko se rom-com, onko se komedia laisinkaan? Missä kohtaa piti nauraa ja missä itkeä? En ymmärrä. "Because Laura and Lhoja (sic!) don’t entirely pl ay out the cliché of tension and anger leading to true love, the film comes off as vague and evasive." Voi helskutti. In an interview, the director says “What really interested me were the feelings that are beyond sexual tension. Romantic love stories are often too narrow, do they fall in love? If so, when do they have sex?” Erittäinkin hyvin sanottu, mutta se menee tämän homse arvostelijan pään yli niin ettei edes tukka heilahda.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 426: The movie sinks, fast and deep, under the weight of dramatic shortcuts, overemphatic details, undercooked possibilities, unconsidered impl ications.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 429: ploads/2014/08/richard-brody-a-film-critic-for.jpg" width="10%" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 433: Sometimes you can tell from the first shot. In “Compartment No. 6,” the camera follows a young woman at a party as she leaves a bathroom and enters a living room full of gathered friends. That walking, back-of-the-head shot is one of the soggiest conventions of the steadicam era, a facile way of conveying characters’ own fields of vision while anchoring the action on them. The familiarity of this trope suggests both limited imagination and an unwillingness to commit to a clear-cut point of view. When used cannily, it can convey ambiguous neutrality and looming mystery, but, more often, it suggests the merely functional recording of action, which is exactly what’s delivered in “Compartment No. 6,” opening in theatres on Wednesday. The movie sinks, fast and deep, under the weight of dramatic shortcuts, overemphatic details, undercooked possibilities, unconsidered impl ications. It’s heavy-handed, tendentious, and regressive—and it should come as no surprise that it’s on the fifteen-film shortlist for the Best International Feature Oscar.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 435: True to national character, the Russian's drunk, aggressive, and crude; boasts of Russia’s greatness; insults Estonia (she expl ains that she’s from Finland); and, while asking her if she’s “selling pussy (her own, not somebody else's),” grabs her between her legs.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 437: It’s a tale of the endearing Russian bear, which rings discordantly when that bear has its claws out for its neighbors. Russians can't be nice! It is all russki propaganda! It depicts a woman’s quick forgiveness of a sexual predator with whom she’s forced to associate. (What the fuck, some sexual predator indeed, won't even give to her when she asks.) It’s about the fecklessness of the intellectual class and the blank emptiness of the Western (and Westernized) bourgeoisie—the screenpl ay deliberately leaves F.F. blank, even unto her name. Ljoha isn’t quite as blank, because in his unguarded drunkenness, he blurts out a few of his prejudices and acts out his impulses.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 452: What’s not fine is that Laura eventually initiates physical intimacy with Ljoha. The film’s logic is that she’s in an emotionally vulnerable state and he’s the only one there for her, because Irina can’t even bother to muster up any excitement when Laura calls. Of course it’s entirely possible that she is bisexual. Still, hasn’t Mr. Kuosmanen learned the inherent offensiveness of depicting such sexual fluidity after Kevin Smith made this mistake in 1997 with “Chasing Amy?” “Blue is the Warmest Color” only went on to prove in 2013 the toxicity of this pl ot device.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 494: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 538: me, it's spl endid enough to remember Mulle se on tarpeex kivaa etmä muistan
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 550: In 1986, Time called Bukowski a "laureate of American lowlife". Regarding his enduring popular appeal, Adam Kirsch of The New Yorker wrote, "the secret of Bukowski's appeal is that he combines the confessional poet's promise of intimacy with the larger-than-life apl omb of a pulp-fiction hero."
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 556: His father was Heinrich (Henry) Bukowski, an American of German descent who had served in the U.S. army of occupation after World War I and had remained in Germany after his army service. His mother was Katharina (née Fett). His paternal grandfather, Leonard Bukowski, had moved to the United States from Imperial Germany in the 1880s. In Cleveland, Ohio, Leonard met Emilie Krause, an ethnic German, who had emigrated from Danzig, Prussia (today Gdańsk, Poland). They married and settled in Pasadena, California, where Leonard worked as a successful carpenter. The coupl e had four children, including Heinrich (Henry), Charles Bukowski's father. His mother, Katharina Bukowski, was the daughter of Wilhelm Fett and Nannette Israel The name Israel is widespread among Catholics in the Eifel region. Bukowski assumed his paternal ancestor had moved from Poland to Germany around 1780, as "Bukowski" is a Polish last name. As far back as Bukowski could trace, his whole family was German.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 558: Bukowski's parents met in Andernach following World War I. His father was German-American and a sergeant in the United States Army serving in Germany after the empire's defeat in 1918. He had an affair with Katharina, a German friend's sister, and she subsequently became pregnant. Bukowski repeatedly claimed to be born out of wedlock, but Andernach marital records indicate that his parents married one month before his birth. Afterwards, Bukowski's father became a building contractor, set to make great financial gains in the aftermath of the war, and after two years moved the family to Pfaffendorf (today part of Koblenz). However, given the crippl ing postwar reparations being required of Germany, which led to a stagnant economy and high levels of inflation, he was unable to make a living and decided to move the family to the U.S. On April 23, 1923, they sailed from Bremerhaven to Baltimore, Maryland, where they settled.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 560: The family moved to Mid-City, Los Angeles, in 1930. Bukowski's father was often unempl oyed. To while away his time, with his mother's acquiescence, his father was frequently abusive, both physically and mentally, beating his son for the smallest real or imagined offense. Heini later told an interviewer that his father beat him with a razor strop three times a week from the ages of six to 11 years. He says that it helped his writing, as he came to understand undeserved as well as well deserved pain.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 562: Young Bukowski spoke English with a strong German accent and was taunted by his childhood pl aymates with the epithet "Heinie", German diminutive of Heinrich, in his early youth. He was shy and socially withdrawn, a condition exacerbated during his teen years by an extreme case of acne. Neighborhood children ridiculed his accent, acne and the sensible clothing his parents made him wear. Nachdem sein Vater seinen Wehrdienst abgeleistet hatte, fand er jedoch nur eine Arbeit als Milchlieferant. Die Familie lebte aus diesem Grund zeitweise in ärmlichen Verhältnissen. Regelmäßig betrog der Vater außerdem Bukowskis Mutter mit anderen Frauen, betrank sich und misshandelte seinen eigenen Sohn körperlich. In die Pubertät gekommen, litt Bukowski zudem an starker Akne und hatte am ganzen Körper Pusteln, weshalb er ein ganzes Jahr nicht die Schule besuchen "konnte". The Great Depression bottled his rage as he grew up, and gave him much of his voice and material for his writings.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 576: In 1969, Bukowski accepted an offer from Black Sparrow Press publisher John Martin and quit his post office job to dedicate himself to full-time writing. He was then 49 years old. As he expl ained in a letter at the time, "I have one of two choices – stay in the post office and go crazy ... or stay out here and pl ay at writer and starve. I have decided to starve. Hah, he made a lot of bucks! By the late 1970s, Bukowski's income was sufficient to give up his lucrative live readings.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 590: Bukowski died of leukemia on March 9, 1994, in San Pedro, aged 73, shortly after compl eting his last novel, Pulp Fiction.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 594: Bukowski's work was subject to controversy throughout his career, and he readily admitted to admiring strong leaders such as Adolf Hitler and Franklin D. Roosevelt. Some guy claimed that his sexism in his poetry, at least in part, translated his life. Feikki spuge setämies jonka näyttämönimi oli vielä "Buck" - nö, 'swar Hank. When women are around, he has to pl ay Man. In a way it's the same kind of 'pose' he pl ays at in his poetry—Bogart, Eric Von Stroheim. "Whenever my wife Lucia would come with me to visit him he'd pl ay the Man role, but one night she couldn't come I got to Buck's pl ace and found a whole different guy—easy to get along with, relaxed, accessible."
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 598: Bukowski often spoke of Los Angeles as his favorite subject. In a 1974 interview he said, "You live in a town all your life, and you get to know every bitch on the street corner and half of them you have already messed around with. You've got the layout of the whole land. You have a picture of where you are.... Since I was raised in L.A., I've always had the geographical and spiritual feeling of being here. I've had time to learn this city. I can't see any other pl ace than L.A." What the fuck, The guy was pure Hollywood.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 603: His posthumous collections have been heavily 'John Martinized', removing booze, hell and Hitler and repl acing dick, cunt and arse with ****. American band Red Hot Chili Peppers reference Bukowski and his works in several songs. A legion of other wannabe baddies have saddled his horses.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 606: Barfly, released in 1987, is a barfingly semi-autobiographical film written by Bukowski and starring Mickey Rourke as Henry Chinaski, who represents Bukowski, and Faye Dunaway as his lover Wanda Wilcox. Sean Penn offered to pl ay Chinaski for one dollar as long as his friend Dennis Hopper would direct,[53] but the European director Barbet Schroeder had invested many years and thousands of dollars in the project and Bukowski felt Schroeder deserved to make it. Bukowski wrote the screenpl ay, was given script approval, and appears as a bar patron in a brief cameo.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 608: Charles Bukowski was the inspiration behind the first chapter of Mark Manson's bestselling self-help book The Subtle Art of Not Giving a Fuck. Charles Bukowski has been depicted on television as well, namely on the Showtime comedy-drama series Californication. The show's main character Hank Moody, pl ayed by actor David Duchovny, is an author based in Los Angeles who subscribes to the same kind of lifestyle that Bukowski became known for. The show depicts profuse indulgence of alcoholism, sex and narcotics, which many critics have described as a television adaption of Bukowski'
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 615: An obvious role model for Harry Hole. Häufige Schaupl ätze sind Rennbahnen, seien es für Pferde- oder für Hunderennen.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 627: Peter Albert David Singer AC/DC (born 6 July 1946) is an Australian moral philosopher, currently the Ira W. DeCamp Professor of Bioethics at Princeton University. He specialises in appl ied ethics and approaches ethical issues from a secular, utilitarian perspective. He is known in particular for his book Animal Liberation (1975), in which he argues in favour of veganism, and his essay "Famine, Affluence, and Morality", in which he argues in favour of donating veggies to help the global poor. For most of his career, he was a preference utilitarian, but he stated in The Point of View of the Universe (2014), coauthored with Katarzyna de Lazari-Radek, that as he became a celeb and started earning bigger bucks, he had become a hedonistic utilitarian, or utilitarian hedonist.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 631: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/7/7d/How_are_we_to_live_%28first_edition%29.jpg" height="150px" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 632: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/69/Peter_Singer_2017_%28cropped%29.jpg" height="150px" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 664: Ethical and Legal Issues in Selling Options to Intellectually Disadvantaged Peopl e (co-author with Terry Carney), Human Rights Commission Monograph Series, no. 2, Australian Government Publishing Service, Canberra, 1986
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 675: Singer analyzes, in detail, why and how other beings' interests should be weighed. In his view, other being's interests should always be weighed according to that being's concrete value to you, and not according to its belonging to some abstract group like animal or veggie. Singer studies a number of ethical issues including race, sex, ability, species, abortion, euthanasia, infanticide, embryo experimentation, the moral status of animals, political violence, overseas aid, and whether we have an obligation to assist others at all. The 1993 second edition adds chapters on refugees, the environment, equality and disability, embryo experimentation, and the proper treatment of academics from Germany or Austria. A third edition published in 2011 omits the chapter on refugees, and contains a new chapter on climate change. A fourth edition is pl anned that omits climate change and adds a chapter on Russia and Ukraina.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 678: H.L.A Hart's review of the third edition in The New York Review of Books was mixed. While writing that "The utility of selling this utilitarian's book to students of its subject can hardly be exaggerated", Hart also criticized Practical Ethics for philosophical inconsistency in its chapter on abortion. He argues that Singer insufficiently expl ains how self interest and classical utilitarianism each view abortion, and does not bring out their differences. Self interest of males is strongly against abortion. Besides, carrots are fit food for bunnies only.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 694: Prior to FTX's collapse, Bankman-Fried was ranked the 41st richest American in the Forbes 400, and the 60th richest person in world by The World's Billionaires. His net worth peaked at $26 billion. In October 2022, he had an estimated net worth of $10.5 billion. By November 8, 2022, amid the bankruptcy of FTX, his net worth was estimated to have dropped 94 percent in a day to $991.5 million according to the Bloomberg Billionaires Index, the largest one-day drop in the index's history. On November 11, 2022, the Bloomberg Billionaires Index considered Bankman-Fried to have no material wealth. Before his wealth had evaporated, Bankman-Fried was a major donor to Democratic political campaigns, and pl anned to spend tens of millions in the 2024 U.S. presidential election.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 696: On December 12, 2022, Bankman-Fried was arrested in the Bahamas and was subsequently extradited to the United States An indictment of him before the U.S. District Court for the Southern District of New York was unsealed on December 13, revealing a range of charges for offenses, including wire fraud, commodities fraud, securities fraud, money laundering, and campaign finance law violations. Bankman-Fried faces up to 115 years in prison if convicted on all eight counts. On January 3, 2023, Bankman-Fried pl ed not guilty to fraud and other charges. On December 22, Bankman-Fried was released on a $250 million bond, on condition that he reside at his parents' home in California.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 700: Bankman-Fried attended Canada/USA Mathcamp, a summer program for mathematically talented high-school students.He attended high school at Crystal Springs Upl ands School in Hillsborough, California. From 2010 to 2014, Bankman-Fried attended the Massachusetts Institute of Technology. There, he lived in a coeducational group house called Epsilon Theta.In 2014, he graduated with a bachelor's degree in physics and a minor in mathematics.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 704: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/thumb/1/1e/Arrest_of_Sam_Bankman-Fried.jpeg/220px-Arrest_of_Sam_Bankman-Fried.jpeg" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 709: Bankman-Fried has publicly stated he supports effective altruism, contending that he was pursuing "earning to give" as an "altruistic career." He is a member of Giving What We Can and has claimed he pl ans to make donations "not based on personal interest but on the projects that are proven by data to be the most effective at helping peopl e."
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 711: On being asked about his previously stated ethical views that it's unacceptable to do unethical things for the greater good, he disagreed with those views and said that expressing those views was a "dumb game we woke westerners pl ay where we say all the right shibboleths and so everyone likes us".
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 713: In December 2022, Sam's bedfellow Ellison pl eaded guilty to two counts of wire fraud, two counts of conspiracy to commit wire fraud, conspiracy to commit securities fraud and conspiracy to commit money laundering. Ellison was born in Boston and grew up in nearby suburbs Cambridge and Newton. She is the eldest of three daughters of Glenn and Sara Fisher Ellison, both economics professors at MIT.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 720: ploads/2022/11/Web_Photo_Editor-2022-11-19T100952.927.jpg?fit=1200%2C1200&ssl=1" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 739: Several of the women who spoke to TIME said that the popularity of polyamory within EA fosters an environment in which men—often men who control career opportunities–feel empowered to recruit younger women into uncomfortable sexual relationships. Many EAs embrace nontraditional living arrangements and question established taboos, and pl enty of peopl e, including many women, enthusiastically consent to sharing partners with others. There is no current data on the prevalence of polyamory in EA. One former EA data scientist says he estimates that about 30% of EA was polyamorous.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 786: Tällä kertaa naiset saavat valita ja kanamiehet kukkoilla! Mut hei--- yrittää Eemil väliin mutta Slushin valtaisat apl odit vaimentavat kanasen.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 813: ploads/2013/07/johnmajor.jpg" height="150px" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 814: ploads/2017/09/Larry-King.jpg" height="150px" />
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 839: Fyra fruar och en man är en dokumentärfilm från 2007 i regi av Nahid Persson. Filmen skildrar iranska familjen Mohammadi som består av Heda, hans fyra fruar och 20 barn. De lever ett kompl icerat liv där kvinnorna tävlar om mannens gunst samtidigt som de är besvikna på honom. Hela skaran bär sej åt som djur. En bjässe, fyra tackor och 20 lamm. Och gamla tackan som fött bjässen nån gång. Det här är ingen liknelse utan det är just på pricken hur det är. Apor utan memer är bara djur. Apor med memer är djur som försöker dölja djuriskheten i memerna. Utan att lyckas alls.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 843: Lemmet var varmt og mykt. Hun holdt hardt rundt pikken, uten at røre hånden frem og bak, kjente bare hurdan den vokste. Kan jeg ha deg? Faen ta meg! Stikk alt den in for faen! Faen tog henne lydsomt med halvstiv pikk. Du er en helt Harry! Du fikk en pl ass i krimibøkene. Jeg elsker å pule! Og spesielt med deg Harry. On tääkin aika paxua narsismia hei.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 850: Its title refers to the Biblical valley where the battle between David and Goliath took pl ace.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 851: Paul Haggis's films are heavy-handed. In the Valley of Elah is otherwise an engrossing murder mystery and antiwar statement, featuring a mesmerizing performance from Tommy Lee Jones. A police detective (Charlize Theron) helps a retired Army sergeant (Tommy Lee Jones) search for his son (Donald Duck), a soldier who went missing soon after returning from Iraq. Hank Deerfield (Bugs Bunny), a Vietnam War veteran, learns that his son may have met with foul pl ay after a night on the town with members of his pl atoon. Rating: R (Some Sexuality/Nudity|Foul Language|Violent and Disturbing Content) Den här artikeln har skapats av Lsjbot, ett program (en robot) för automatisk redigering.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 853: ‘Emeq HaEla (hebreiska: עמק האלה) är en dal i Israel. Den ligger i distriktet Jerusalem, i den centrala delen av landet. Called in Arabic: وادي السنط, Wadi es-Sunt, it is a long, shallow valley now in Israel and the West Bank best known as the pl ace described in the Hebrew Bible (the Old Testament of Christianity) where the Israelites were encamped when David fought Goliath (1 Samuel 17:2; 1 Samuel 17:19). The valley is named after the large and shady terebinth trees (Pistacia atlantica) which are indigenous to it. David ja Goljat mutustelivat siellä pistaasipähkinöitä ennen matsia. The Valley of Elah has gained new importance as a possible point of support for the argument that Israel was more than merely a tribal chiefdom in the time of King David. Others are skeptical and suggest it might be just another piece of Jewish propaganda.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 857: The Palestinian stronghold was on the coastal pl ane in the Gaza area.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 858: They were powerful, kulturnyje, and possessed iron. They were the high-tech peopl e of the day and did all they could to prohibit neolithic Israel from gaining iron and access to their technology (1 Sam. 13:19) They worshipped many false gods. Among them was the worship of Baal and Dagon. Mutta nyt mikki Sammelille:
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 904: «Ideen om utbytting er pl antet av hvite mennesker,» sa Tony. Men begrepet har vist seg nyttig for afrikanske ledere som trenger å peke på en felles fiende for å samle folket bak seg. Helt fra avviklingen av kolonistyrene på sekstitallet har de brukt de hvites skyldfølelse til å skaffe seg selv makt så den virkelige utbyttingen av folket kunne begynne. Den hvites skyldfølelse for å kolonisere Afrika er patetisk. Den virkelige forbrytelsen var å overlate afrikaneren til sin egen morderiske og destruktive natur. Tro meg, Kaja, kongolesere flest har aldri hatt det bedre enn under belgierne. Opprørene hadde aldri noe grunnlag i folkets vilje, men i enkeltpersoners maktbegjær. Små grupperinger som stormet belgiernes hus her ved Kivusjøen fordi husene var så fine at de regnet med å finne noe der som de hadde lyst på. Sånn var det, og sånn er det.»
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 939: Harry innser at Bratt har tatt politiets filer uten tillatelse. Han får vite at Bratt leter etter en kobling mellom flere forskjellige saker som handler om savnede personer og en annen sak, fra ni år tidligere, som ble etterforsket av Gert Rafto. Bratt overtaler Harry til å åpne en ny etterforskning av forsvinningen av Sylvia Otterson, som de finner fremdeles i live på gården hennes. Men kort tid etter at de går derfra, halshugger en maskert figur Sylvia. Men senere møter de Sylvias identiske tvilling, Ane. Sylvias kropp er inne i låven hennes, og hodet er pl assert på toppen av en snømann. Katrine tror en korrupt forretningsmann Arve Støp er ansvarlig for alle dødsfallene. Harry reiser til Bergen for å undersøke nærmere, og møter Rakels nye kjæreste Mathias, en kirurg.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 39: Gjenganger play:none">Algolagniaa
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 40: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/07/Thorvald_Niss_-_The_drowned_man%27s_ghost_tries_to_claim_a_new_victim_for_the_sea_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg/250px-Thorvald_Niss_-_The_drowned_man%27s_ghost_tries_to_claim_a_new_victim_for_the_sea_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 57: ploads/2020/03/Dea-Atalanta-quadro-Guido-Reni-780x516.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 63: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/3/33/Atalanta_BCn_logo.svg/800px-Atalanta_BCn_logo.svg.png" width="20%" style="float:right" />
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 90: Question: Is Atalanta in Calydon a novel a poem or a pl ay?
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 91: Answer: Algernon Charles Swinburne's Atalanta in Calydon (1865) is the finest exampl e of Victorian 'Greek' tragedy, a genre of English poetry inspired by the forms, contents, and styles of Attic tragedy.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 157: Through all the roar and rippl e of streaming springs Läpi kaiken hyrskynmyrskyn ja virtalähteiden
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 199: The mother of months in meadow or pl ain Kuukausien äiti niityllä tai kentällä
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 200: Fills the shadows and windy pl aces Täyttää varjot ja tuulenpaikat
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 201: With lisp of leaves and rippl e of rain; Lehtien lässytyxellä ja sateen ropinalla;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 212: Over the spl endour and speed of thy feet; Ylle jalkojesi loiston sekä nopsuuden;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 221: As raiment, as songs of the harp-pl ayer; Kuin hyntteet, kuin laulut kitaristille;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 268: Flowers bring we, and pure lips that pl ease the gods, Me tuodaan kukkia, ja jumalaisia pusuhuulia,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 277: Winter, and snows that pl ague all men for sin, Talven, ja lumet jotka vaivaa syntisiä apinoita,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 306: Yea, lest they smite us with some four-foot pl ague. Jep, ettei ne lyö meitä neljän jalan rutolla.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 353: Wherefore being wroth she pl agued the land; but now Sen takeen se äimistyi ja teki tuhoja; mutta nyt
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 430: That tremble, or water when it sobs with heat Vapisee, tai vesi kun se alkaa kupl ia
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 469: High up, the cloven shadow of either pl ume Ylhäällä sen töyhtöpäätä peltihattua,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 473: Seen through blown cloud and pl ume-like drift, when ships
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 492: Trampl ed the ember and crushed it with swift feet.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 578: With deeds to do and praise to pl uck from thee.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 594: Bound to root out the tuskèd pl ague, and leave
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 622: Most swift and spl endid of men’s children born,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 683: Vine-chapl eted, with savours of the sea,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 725: Law lives upon their lips whom these appl aud.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 729: How sayest thou these? what god appl auds new things?
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 785: Trothpl ight and mutual mouth of marriages.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 799: Blameless, and seen well-pl eased the face of gods,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 814: Through spl endid life and death desirable
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 834: Spring heavy sorrows and a sleepl ess life,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 857: And the mad peopl e of windy mountain ways
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 861: Straight back the relaxed rippl e, didst thou break
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 901: White spl endid snow-flakes of the sundering foam,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 903: Followed the pl unging pl oughshare of hewn pine,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 913: Clear through the irremeable Sympl egades;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1114: A little pl easure of life;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1125: As a brand pl ucked forth of a pyre,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1140: In the barren pl aces of mirth,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1154: A moan as of peopl e in prison,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1197: And cast out gods from their pl aces.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1252: With perfect chapl ets woven for thine of thee.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1337: And pl ay the shield for strong men and the spear?
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1350: Men, and the chosen of all this peopl e, and thou,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1457: Is perishable and pl aintive, clothed with care
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1479: And circled pain about with pl easure,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1480: And girdled pl easure about with pain;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1534: Cast out and spilt about their holy pl aces:
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1583: Thou hast made sweet springs for all the pl easant streams,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1622: But from sharp words and wits men pl uck no fruit,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1634: Came clashes of swift hoofs and trampl ing feet
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1638: Gleams, and a thunder of peopl e that cried out,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1703: Glittering with lipl ess tooth and fire-swift eye;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1704: But from her white braced shoulder the pl umed shafts
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1746: And pl ashed ear-deep with pl unging feet; but she
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1750: Hissed, and the moist pl umes of the songless reeds
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1784: And trampl ed, springing sideways from the tusk,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1802: Deep in; and deepl y smitten, and to death,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1810: Strip and stretch out the spl endour of the spoil;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1822: Olive and ivy and popl ar dedicate,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1853: All the wan green pl aces bear
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1880: And with sudden spl endid breast
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2154: And pl ease me with great eyes; and those days went
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2369: Folds of dead peopl e, and alien from the sun;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2450: Have pity upon all peopl e for their sake.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2526: Hast thou taken the purpl e to fold thee, and made thy mouth sweet?
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2549: Give pl ace unto me; I am as any of you,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2729: As the mouth of a flute-pl ayer,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2877: With unchapl eted hair,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3004: a terrible pl ace.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3013: spl endour of spears.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3039: In the folds of the hills of home, high pl aces of Calydon?
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3056: Where the narrowing Sympl egades whitened the straits of
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3146: O father, among dark pl aces and men dead.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3166: Thou too, the bitter mother and mother-pl ague
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3172: Althæa, since my father’s pl oughshare, drawn
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 39: Mondo Cane play:none">Juopporemmejä
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 40: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/it/thumb/d/d0/Mondo_cane.JPG/260px-Mondo_cane.JPG" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 193: pload/f_auto,c_limit,w_3840,q_auto/v1665819748/13-1-50883652-1629878185084" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 211: Hande arvelee että Penalla oli joku kristuskompl exi, se oli haaveillut papin urasta pienenä. IKHTHYS kiinnosti sitä myöhemminkin. "Olen verkon silmässä kala" alkuperäisesitystä Dipolissa, san. Kailas säv. MA Numminen ei löydy juutuupista. Se kuten talviverkkokalastus lie ollut ilmeistä eläinrääkkäystä. Penasta tuli nilviäisten kalastaja.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 232: Uuden Suomettaren niin saatanan tyylikäs, objektiivinen, pelkästään tosioihin nojautuva tohtoristyttö vapaasti lainaten sanoi: aina on ollut nuorallatanssijoita ja muita rujoja jotka korva kuhilona ja mankku perseen takana tekevät juttuja ja väittävät että se on taidetta. Se osoitti jos ei muuta niin ihmisen jonka piti olla jonkinlainen kansankirjallisuuden tutkija, sokeutta ja kuuroutta ja tietämättömyyttä puhekielisen repl iikin ja lauseen olemuksesta, ja kun näin on, toivotan ämmälle kohdunkaulan syöpää ja verisuonten kalkkeutumista ja suorinta tietä mullan alle. Just tällänen toivotus oli mulla mielessä sille Jättijaon väkäleualle.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 248: Cary Grant saattoi olla juutalainen ja se todennäköisesti oli homo. Rooseveltin esi-isät saattoi olla juutalaisia Hollannissa. Claes Rosenvelt entered the cloth business in New York, and was married in 1682. He accumulated a fortune. He then changed his name to Nicholas Roosevelt. Of his four sons, Isaac died young. Nicholas married Sarah Solomons. Jacobus married Catherina Hardenburg. The Roosevelts were not a fighting but a peace-loving peopl e, devoted to trade. Isaac became a capitalist. He founded the Bank of New York in 1790.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 263: Sirri Härölän jouzenlaulu oli teos Jeesus Enkelinpoika Nasaretilainen, aika samantyyppinen kirja kuin aikaisemmin lukemamme evankeliumi-fanifiktio. Jännä miten samanlaisia EFK-versioita kynäilijät on Jeesuxesta kehitelleet. Selkeästi panokohtauxet on ollut suurin puute evankeliumeissa. Harri vetää gospelien mutkat suorixi, samastaa Magdalan ja Betanian Maariat. Jeesus tekee Magdaleenan kanssa perettä kuin sen yhden bestselleristin tiiliskivessä, annas olla se on kielen päällä, juu Dan Brownin Leonardo da Vinci koodi. There, Teabing expl ains that the Grail is not a cup, but connected to Mary Magdalene, and that she was Jesus Christ's wife and is the person to his right in The Last Supper. The hidden sarcophagus of Maria M. is in Louvre. No meat left in it, I fear.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 302: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/03/119_Martti_Simojoki.jpg/250px-119_Martti_Simojoki.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 310: ploads/2019/03/Desantti-Alexej-Ivanoff.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 392: Minua on ihmetyttänyt, miksi kirkon piirissä avioliittoon, sukupuoleen tai seksiin liittyvät kysymykset saavat niin suunnattoman painoarvon? Miksi yhteiskunnallinen oikeudenmukaisuus, syrjäytetyt, vähäosaiset ja köyhät, ahneus, mammona ja ihmisten eriarvoisuus, joista Raamattu sentään jonkun verran puhuu, saavat niin niukasti huomiota? No hizi kyllä FUCK! sentään apinaa enempi kuumottaa kuin EAT! Sitäpaizi EAT! kysymykset heiluttavat koko pl utokraattisen pääomayhteiskunnan juuria, parempi sittenkin rytkyttää vain kirkkovenettä.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 418: Nyt olis tarkotus lukea susiparin jouzenlaulu, teos nimeltä Terroristerna. Terroristilla tarkoitettiin 70-luvulla ihan muuta kuin nyttemmin, ne olivat useimmiten osaansa tyytymättömiä valkoisia opiskelijatyyppejä vasemmalta laidalta. Sittemminhän ne on olleet jotain vyöpommeilla varustettuja fundamentalistirättipäitä (Dan Steinbock) tai palopulloja parkkeerattuihin autoihin heitteleviä mustakalloja (Nuori Wallenberg). Yhteistä on se ettei niillä ole univormuja eikä ne pelaa reilun sodan säännöillä. Sen voi sentään sanoaa pl ussaxi Ukrainaa demilitarisoiville ryssille.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 429: Filmiohjaajan pornofilmeissä käytettiin alaikäisiä tyttöjä ja hyvävartaloisia ruåzalaisia blondimiehiä pl us yhtä token neekeriä. Kuvanlaatu oli kehno ja näyttelijätyö heikkoa, vaikka kaikki osat kyllä näyteltiin. Velipoika mulle pornokuvan näytti siinä oli hämähäkki väärinpäin.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 460: Sture Hällström on petetty jalo proletaari, kulturnyj vaikka pelkkä puutarhuri, joka kostaa rautakalterilla tyttärensä pilloneelle pl ösölle #metoo hirviölle, ja estää samalla ettei se pääse pillomaan enää lisää piikasia. Hyvin tehty Sture, näyttää Maj ja Per peukkuja, mutta joudut siitä silti tiilenpäitä laskemaan. Murha mikä murha, ja premeditoitu kaiken kukkuraksi. Lain tehtävä ei ole oikoa sosiaalisia epäkohtia, pikemminkin pitää niitä yllä. Plösön perhe jatkaa iloisesti kissanpäiviä Djurholmenissa. Beck siirtyy seuraavaan työasiaan. Tää murhaepisodi oli kyllä kuin palleroikäisille tarkoitettu palapeli missä pitää sijoittaa possun muotoinen pala possun muotoiseen reikään pienen varren kanssa.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 470: Weserübung oli viikinkien nitistyxen peitenimi viime maailmankärhämässä. Churchill olis halunnut etukäteismiehittää Norjan pl us Ruåzin malmikaivoxet muka auttaaxeen pikku Suomea talvisodassa mutta kolleegat eivät antaneet. Ruåzi ja Norja eivät lämmenneet asialle ollenkaan. Suomen nyykähtäessä talvisodan jälkeen meni kiinni sen suunnitelman aikaikkuna. Kun norjalaiset vellihousut tunaroivat Altmarkin vankilaivan kaa ja päästivät britit mellastamaan rannoillaan, kukaan ei enää luottanut pätkääkään hiihtopipoihin.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 503: Catalina är että namn för DC-3. Tre år tidigare hade Sverige, i strid med den officiellt strikta neutralitetslinjen, ingått ett hemligt avtal med USA och Storbritannien. Svenska signalspaningsdata skulle bytas mot amerikansk teknisk utrustning. Flygvapnets specialutrustade Tp 79:or 79001 Hugin och 79002 Munin (Odens korpar, see album 144 genomförde regelbundet topphemliga flygningar över Östersjön med amerikansk signalspaningsutrustning ombord. Sverige bedrev även fotospaning mot Sovjetunionen. Under 1948 hade en S 26 Mustang flugen av Fredrik Lambert-Meuller medvetet kränkt sovjetiskt territorium. Flygpl anet var utrustat med en kamera lånad från USA:s flygvapen. Under 1949 hade spaningsflygningarna fortsatt med en S 31 Spitfire flugen av Ingemar Wängström.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 505: Huvudsyftet med operationerna var att få fram uppgifter om Sovjetunionens luftförsvar, särskilt dess kapacitet att bekämpa amerikanska kärnvapenbestyckade bombflygpl an av typ Boeing B-47 Stratojet.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 507: År 1951 ertappades Sverige med att vid två tillfällen ha kränkt sovjetiskt luftrum. Vid det ena tillfället var ett av pl anen så nära som 2,5 nautiska mil (drygt 4,5 km) från den baltiska kusten, och regeringen tvingades be om ursäkt på dipl omatisk väg. Under år 1952 steg spänningen ytterligare då Nato-pl an upprepade gånger kränkte sovjetiskt luftrum och de svenska flygningarna blev fler. Sovjetisk press började skriva om att Sverige gick Natos ärenden och de drog sig inte för att påminna om det öde som det amerikanska signalspaningspl an, som skjutits ner över Östersjön år 1950, hade mött.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 509: Under förmiddagen den 13 juni 1952, mitt under en mycket het period i det kalla kriget, försvann flygvapnets Tp 79 Hugin med flygvapennummer 79001 utan att lämna några andra spår än en sönderskjuten räddningsflotte efter sig. Den specialutrustade DC-3:an var på väg hem mot Bromma flygpl ats, efter att ha genomfört ett radarspaningsuppdrag. Klockan 11:08 samma dag rapporterade DC-3:ans navigatör Gösta Blad för sista gången in pl anets position. Klockan 11:23 mottog signalisten vid flygflottiljen Roslagens flygkår (F 2) i Hägernäs ett anrop från DC-3:an, vilket dock snabbt dog ut. Det var den svenska besättningens sista livstecken. Flygpl anets position över Östersjön vid försvinnandet var oklar. Sovjetunionen förnekade inblandning i försvinnandet. I de första svenska pressmeddelandena om DC-3:ans försvinnande nämndes ingenting om misstanken att pl anet blivit nedskjutet, bland annat för att dölja det faktum att flygvapnet tillsammans med Försvarets radioanstalt (FRA) bedrev denna signalspaning. Representanter för Flygvapnet och Sveriges regering hävdade att pl anets besättning varit ute på en oskyldig navigeringsflygning i utbildningssyfte. Svensk press intog en hård antisovjetisk linje.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 511: Tre dagar senare deltog två svenska militära sjöräddningspl an av typ Tp 47 Catalina i försöken att lokalisera Tp 79:an. Ett av pl anen besköts av sovjetiskt jaktflyg och tvingades nödlanda nära det västtyska fraktfartyget Münsterland som räddade de sju besättningsmedlemmarna.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 513: En av skurkarna hette Erik Carlsson (FRA, telegrafist och rysk tolk). Carlsson hade genomfört värnpl iktstjänstgöring på Wendes artilleriregemente (A 3) i Kristianstad. Han kunde sju språk och hade stor användning av ryska. Carlsson var anställd vid Försvarets radioanstalt där han hade lärt sig radioteknik. Carlssons kvarlevor hittades aldrig i flygpl anskroppen och samtidigt har de funnit tecken på att han skulle ha hunnit lämna DC3:an med hjälp av en fallskärm då den sovjetiske piloten har uppgett att han såg minst en svensk i fallskärm lämna det brinnande pl anet. Det fanns även hemliga Säpo-dokument som pekade ut Carlsson som övertygad kommunist och potentiell förrädare. Misstankarna mot Carlsson har aldrig avskrivits. Bra gjort 92-an Carlsson!
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 538: America as the new Chosen Peopl e.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 550: Oikein arvattu! The Terrorists was unfinished at the time of Per Wahlöö's death in June 1975; the last few chapters were compl eted by Maj Sjöwall alone. Maj ei vaikuta laatikon terävimmältä veizeltä.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 557: Ruåzalaiset saa jotain viboja törkyisistä tyypeistä. Eikä vaan ruåzalaiset vaan muutkin teeveekazojat. Ihanaa vaikka hirveää. Krimeissä on törkyisiä tyyppejä ja miljöitä tupl asti enemmän kuin tavallisia, loput on jotain ökyrikkaita. On kiva nähdä miten toinen puoli elää. Saa pöyhistyä ja pöyristyä. Ei 12-vuotias kissa ole erityisen vanha. Viiru oli yli 20 kun se katosi. Eikä kissat elä maidolla. Eikä pyrppäävä Braxen naurata uusintana.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 567: The Marshall Attack is an aggressive line in the Ruy Lopez, where Black sacrifices a pawn by pl aying d5 to gain initiative and a kingside attack. Frank Marshall famously debuted it in his game against José Raúl Capablanca in 1918. Marshall lost the game. White wins in well over half the pl ays.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 577: Vitut tää on mikään "huikea jännityskertomus". Tää on Maj Sjöwallin vajakkimainen post mortem pamfletti. Som Carl von Clausewitz så fiffigt fick det till: War is the continuation of politics by other means. The Western way of conducting war is built on five foundations; superior technology, discipl ined soldiers, the means to finance wars, and military traditions. Ruåzi on pieni mutta nälkäinen kapitalistinen valtio.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 39: KREMLIN NYRKISTÄ play:none">{span style="color:white;background-color:red"}2023{/span} Antisosiaalista
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 80: 1990-luvun alun lamaan vaikuttaneita syitä olivat ennen kaikkea oikeistohallituxet, ulkomaan rahoitusmarkkinoiden vapautus, kasinotalous, pörssikupl at, kiinteistökupl at, Neuvostoliiton romahduxen seurauksena idänkaupan tyssähdys, rakennusalan possahdus, bensan hinnan nousu, Saxojen yhdistymisen aiheuttama korkotason nousu, kovan kakan politiikka, pakkodevalvaatio, sahahampainen Iiro Viinanen. Aivan tolkutonta kähmintää ja tunarointia. Valtion pankkituet valuivat Suomen sillinruotowiixisen oligarkin taskuun.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 84: The early 1990s recession describes the period of economic downturn affecting much of the Western world in the early 1990s. The impacts of the recession contributed in part to the 1992 U.S. presidential election victory of Bill Clinton over incumbent president George H. W. Bush. The recession also included the resignation of Canadian prime minister Brian Mulroney, the reduction of active companies by 15% and unempl oyment up to nearly 20% in Finland, civil disturbances in the United Kingdom and the growth of discount stores in the United States and beyond.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 86: Primary factors believed to have led to the recession include the following: restrictive monetary policy enacted by central banks, primarily in response to inflation concerns, the loss of consumer and business confidence as a result of the 1990 oil price shock, the end of the Cold War and the subsequent decrease in defense spending, the savings and loan crisis and a slump in office construction resulting from overbuilding during the 1980s. The 1990 oil price shock occurred in response to the Iraqi invasion of Kuwait on August 2, 1990, Saddam Hussein's second invasion of a fellow OPEC member. Lasting only nine months, the price spike was less extreme and of shorter duration than the previous oil crises of 1973–1974 and 1979–1980, but the spike still contributed to the recession of the early 1990s in the United States. The average monthly price of oil rose from $17 per barrel in July to $36 per barrel in October. As the U.S.-led coalition experienced military success against Iraqi forces, concerns about long-term suppl y shortages eased and prices began to fall.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 90: The collapse of the Soviet Union in 1991 led to a 70% drop in trade with Russia and eventually Finland was forced to devaluate, which increased the private sector's foreign currency denominated debt burden. At the same time authorities tightened bank supervision and prudential regulation, lending dropped by 25% and asset prices halved. Combined with raising savings rate and worldwide economic troubles, this led to a sharp drop of aggregate demand and a wave of bankruptcies. Credit losses mounted and a banking crisis inevitability followed. The number of companies went down by 15%, real GDP contracted about 14% and unempl oyment rose from 3% to nearly 20% in four years.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 101: The Soviet Union's last year of economic growth was 1989, and throughout the 1990s, recession ensued in the Former Soviet Republics. In May 1998, following the 1997 crash of the East Asian economy, things began to get even worse in Russia. In August 1998, the value of the ruble fell 34% and peopl e clamored to get their money out of banks (see 1998 Russian financial crisis). The government acted by dragging its feet on privatization programs. Russians responded to this situation with approval by electing the more pro-dirigist and less liberal Vladimir Putin as President in 2000. Putin proceeded to reassert the role of the federal government, and gave it power it had not seen since the Soviet era. State-run businesses were used to out-compete some of the more wealthy rivals of Putin. Putin's policies were popular with the Russian peopl e, gaining him re-election in 2004. At the same time, the export-oriented Russian economy enjoyed considerable influx of foreign currency thanks to rising worldwide oil prices (from $15 per barrel in early 1999 to an average of $30 per barrel during Putin's first term). The early 2000s recession was avoided in Russia due to rebound in exports and, to some degree, a return to dirigism.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 103: Dirigism (from French diriger 'to direct') is an economic doctrine in which the state pl ays a strong directive (policies) role contrary to a merely regulatory interventionist role over a market economy. As an economic doctrine, dirigisme is the opposite of laissez-faire, stressing a positive role for state intervention in curbing productive inefficiencies and market failures.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 126: An expl osive mix of excessive borrowing and risk by households and Wall Street that put the financial system on a collision course with crisis;
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 131: During a period of strong global growth, growing capital flows, and prolonged stability earlier this decade, market participants sought higher yields without an adequate appreciation of the risks and failed to exercise proper due diligence. At the same time, weak underwriting standards, unsound risk management practices, increasingly compl ex and opaque financial products, and consequent excessive leverage combined to create vulnerabilities in the system.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 135: Peltipöxy-Nokian taru päättyi noloon myyntiin Mikkisoftalle. On 10 September 2010, Olli-Pekka Kallasvuo was fired as CEO and it was announced that Stephen Elop from Microsoft would take Nokia's CEO. One former Nokia empl oyee claimed that the company was run as a "Soviet-style bureaucracy". Kapeahartiainen Jorma Ollila ryömi Shellin alle piiloon ja E. Saarinen vetäytyi Bulevardille nuolemaan näppejään ja lääkizemään ruskeata kieltään.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 166: Aki: ”Nyt kun on päästy näin positiivisiin ajatuksiin, niin näin juuri valokuvan tähtitaivaasta, ja siellähän on minimissään 100 miljardia eri tähteä tai pl aneettaa, ellei tuhat kertaa enemmän. Maapallo on luultavasti niistä ainoa, jossa bakteereista on kehittynyt nisäkäs. Noin 300 vuodessa ihminen on onnistunut siinä, että kaikki eläinlajit on tapettu tai alistettu tuotantoeläimiksi. Samaan aikaan me itse tehdään hyvin nopeaa itsemurhaa. Ihminen on kyllä hyvin näppärä keksimään kaikkea, kuten muovisia banaanieväskoteloita, mutta viisautta sillä ei juuri ole.”
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 228: ploads/2020/04/IMG_0042-800x800.jpg" width="30%"# />
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 240: "You can do it if you really try". Yes we can. Ura my pobedujem! Naisen elimissä poltti voima ja energia pl us solidaarisuus. Rauha ystävyys, solidaarisuus, nuorten yhteistyö sen varmistaa voi. Miten voitamme hädän ja kurjuuden, kun nääntyy niin moni ihminen, ettei olla tarvitsisi nälissään köyhimmänkään? Miten voimme me sodat lopettaa ja aseet teljetä lukkojen taa? Miten suuntaamme voimat toimintaan rakentavaan? Nainen: Maailman nuorten työllä yhteisin ponnistuksin, maailman nuorten työ sen varmistaa voi. "Yucca" kuuli naisen puheesta välittömästi että nainen oli amerikkalainen.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 245: ploads/2020/07/Beavis-and-Butt-Head.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 252: pload/fl_lossy,q_auto,f_auto,d_yle_areena.jpg/v1610733963/13-1-804384-1605299659336.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 468: Lontoo painostaa Wieniä maximaalisilla dipl omaattisia toimenpiteillä. Itävalta suljetaan pois seuraavista Euroviisuista.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 39: Vienanlahdelta Laatokkaan play:none">Russofobiaa
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 40: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 81: "Kaiken ostaa venäläinen Karjalasta ei ole enää Värtsilässä taloa missä ei venäjätä kuulisi..." "Käyhän se näinkin, kyllä rupl a kelpaa siinä missä kekkomarkkakin." "Ja meitin siis naapurin Tarjan tussu kyllä kiinnostaa, siinä sitä jotakin on!"
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 92: With the world’s attention fixed firmly on the invasion of Ukraine, Antony Pyp Pipo’s new history of Russia’s 1917 revolutions and subsequent civil war is especially timely. He expl ains to Rob Attaboy how the fall of the last tsar launched a chain of events leading to millions of deaths and one of history’s most brutal dictatorships! Lähde: History Extra
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 96: The stage was set for a civil war between the Bolshevik Red Army and their “White” enemies that devastated the country and led to millions of deaths. Several international powers also contributed troops and suppl ies to the conflict, predominantly to the Bolsheviks’ opponents. (Note the similarity to Ukraina today!) In 1919, White armies led by Generals Kolchak and Denikin launched offensives that seemed set to destroy the fledgling communist regime, but the Red Army managed to repel them. Following those triumphs the Bolsheviks were eventually able to achieve ultimate victory, though fighting continued for many more months. It looks like this history is just now repeating itself and in just the same pl ace too, fascist Ukraina!
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 98: The most important thing for me was to understand the chain of disasters of the 20th century – the impacts of which actually are still with us today, as we see in Ukraine. Around 12 million peopl e died in the Russian Civil War. This wanton destruction created a terrible fear among the middle classes, but also galvanised the left – the Bolsheviks and other communists – and marked the start of a vicious circle of rhetoric that developed, above all, in the 1930s. This is really what dominates the whole of the 20th century, yet I think that the Russian Civil War is not understood well enough, nor is the demilitarisation of Ukraine.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 104: Antony Pyp Pipo: What has stood out is the sheer horror of the civil war. There’s a savagery and a sadism that is very hard to comprehend; I’m still mulling it over and trying to understand it. It was not just the build-up of hatred over centuries but a vengeance that seemed to be required. It went beyond the killing; there was also the sheer, horrible inventiveness of the tortures inflicted on peopl e. We need to look at the origins of the civil war: who started it, and was it avoidable? But one also needs to see the different patterns seen in the “Red Terror” (the campaign of political repression and violence carried out by the Bolsheviks) and the “White Terror” (the equal or worse violence perpetrated by that side in the war)– and consider the question: why are civil wars so much crueller, so much more savage than state-on-state wars?
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 113: Even many Bolsheviks were shocked by Lenin’s extremism. His new government abolished the police and the army, repl acing them with Red Guards from the factories, and absolutely everything was nationalised! How indecent! This course of action wasn’t apparent beforehand, and – not surprisingly since they lost their jobs and status – many of the civil servants didn’t want to work with the new government.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 115: He even accused the bourgeoisie of somehow sabotaging food suppl ies. Actually, though, the bourgeoisie had virtually no control over food suppl ies at all, they were all stashed away by the kulaks.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 118: Rob Attaboy: The Bolsheviks didn’t have the support of the majority of peopl e around the country at the time of the revolution. Didn’t that put them at a serious disadvantage once the civil war began?
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 120: Antony Pyp Pipo: However, what’s interesting is how few of the White officers in Petrograd, Moscow and many other pl aces actually joined the revolt against the communists at that stage. I think they were all so dispirited and demoralised by everything that had happened that most of them had sunk into apathy. But yes, there were certain areas where there were very strong reactions against the Bolsheviks. And that early part of the civil war, in the winter of 1917–18, showed that the outcome largely depended on what happened in local areas. It was a geographically fragmented civil war that was taking pl ace across the whole of the landmass. Which really shows it was an oppressed peopl e's uprising.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 127: The problems created by the antisemitic an arrogant Whites also appl ied to their relationships with possible allies such as the red Finns, the Baltic States and the Poles later on. If those powers had combined, they could easily have defeated the communists (haha LOL).
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 134: Antony Pyp Pipo: Their commitment was unclear, and this was always the problem: they couldn’t make up their own minds. In the early part of 1919, US president Woodrow Wilson thought that some form of peace could be achieved in Russia, and suggested a conference to be held in the Princes’ Islands lying in the Sea of Marmara close to Constantinopl e [now Istanbul]. However, the Whites were so furious at the Reds and what had happened up till then – the murders of the aristocracy, the destruction and so on – that they refused to sit down with the Reds. And Lenin and the Bolsheviks – who at that stage thought that they were going to win the war (as they did) – had no intention of sitting down with them, let alone the motherfucking Anglo Saxons meddling everywhere with just their own "vital interests" in mind.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 138: Antony Pyp Pipo: Earlier on, Russia’s First World War Allies agreed to provide a certain amount of help to the White cause in the form of weaponry. Now, you can provide weapons and you can provide suppl ies, but you’ve got to be able to get them to their destination – and, until the First World War came to an end in November 1918, the Allies didn’t have access through the Dardanelles and therefore couldn’t suppl y the Cossacks and Denikin’s White armies in the south of Russia.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 139: Some suppl ies were brought in through the far north – through Murmansk, where the British already had a base, and Archangel, with some marines who’d landed in 1918 to protect the suppl ies delivered there. Then, in the far east, the Japanese started to land huge numbers of troops. At one stage Japan had almost 70,000 troops in Siberia. The Americans also sent in the equivalent of a small division of troops as part of an expeditionary force.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 141: The British eventually landed only a coupl e of battalions – of the Middlesex Regiment and the Hampshire Regiment. All too little! This time round we gotta send Harry Windsor with a division of chess pieces, pl us Meghan Markle on the off chance that she gets shot.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 150: In early 1919, for exampl e, there was a sudden advance by the White General Kolchak’s troops all the way to the Volga. The trouble was that the great advance of General Denikin from the south did not coincide with that – and by the time Denikin’s march on Moscow started, Kolchak’s advance was in full retreat.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 152: Denikin’s advance initially went well, and there were moments when Trotsky and others in the Red camp really thought that they were facing defeat. But, because the Red Army no longer had to worry about Kolchak’s troops to the east, they were able to reinforce their troops facing Denikin. October 1919 saw a compl ete turnaround – the final turning point, if you like, in the war.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 156: Rob Attaboy: Some of the pl aces that were fought over during the civil war have recently been battlegrounds in the current conflict in Ukraine. How far, if at all, did the Russian civil war prefigure the events of today?
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 158: Antony Pyp Pipo: The Russian Civil War was really the moment when Ukraine started to become a separate entity from Russia, all thanks to Lenin. There wasn't much of malorussian culture in the countryside, mostly some boring poetry and balalaika music. But at this time they finally had a chance to get rid of the Turks and Poles, and to take Ukraine back to the fold of the great east slavonic commonwealth, by joining the USSR and their Big Brother– and they’d been given the opportunity. But they botched it compl etely when the USSR collapsed. That is when they went back to fraternize with the West and develop a more modern nazism with Nato.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 169: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ea/Young_Bakunin2.jpg/250px-Young_Bakunin2.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 172: Tverin karjalaisena syntynyt Bakunin kuului varakkaaseen aatelissukuun. Hänen dipl omaattina toiminut isänsä omisti noin 500 maaorjaa, ja oli ajatusmaailmaltaan muutenkin talousliberaali osallistuen muun muassa vuoden 1825 dekabristikapinaan. Täytettyään 14 vuotta Bakunin aloitti opiskelun pietarilaisessa sotilasakatemiassa, josta hänet erotettiin kuuden vuoden opiskelujen jälkeen 1834 huonojen arvosanojen vuoksi. Mihail ei oppinut edes tekemään hommiota kunnolla käsi levynä. Sen jälkeen Bakunin palveli Venäjän keisarillisessa kaartissa kahden vuoden ajan. Hän erosi palveluksesta, koska ei pystynyt hyväksymään näkemäänsä puolalaisten hyvää kohtelua. Sama vitutti Dostojevskiä Siperian keikalla.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 180: Jutku-Marxille kiukustunut Bakunin päästeli aika pahanlaatuista salaliittoteoriaa. "the communism of Marx wants a mighty centralization by the state, and where this exists there must nowadays be a central State Bank and where such a bank exists, the parasitical Jewish nation, which speculates on the labor of the peopl es, will always find a means to sustain itself. This whole Jewish world, comprising a single expl oiting sect, a kind of bloodsucking peopl e, a kind of organic destructive collective parasite, going beyond not only the frontiers of states, but of political opinion, this world is now, at least for the most part, at the disposal of Marx on the one hand, and of Rothschild on the other."
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 186: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a5/Orehek_iznutry.JPG/1280px-Orehek_iznutry.JPG" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 249: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 326: Kuka hiljaa ottaa rupl at,
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 362: Nekrasov's film The Magnitsky Act – Behind the Scenes, produced in Norway by Piraya Film, supported by a number of European film funds and the public Franco-German TV network Arte TV and compl eted in 2016, caused a major controversy. The film alleges that western politicians and media were "misled" by Bill Browder, a U.S. born investor and campaigner, into believing that the Russian tax consultant Sergei Magnitsky had been persecuted and killed for exposing corruption. Bill Browder's version of Magnitsky's life and death has been widely accepted across the world, and became the basis for legislations and sanctions in a number of countries, first of all the U.S. The premiere of Nekrasov's film at the European Parliament, scheduled for April 26, 2016, was stopped by Heidi Hautala at the last moment. A TV broadcast in Germany and France and film's public screenings were cancelled due to Browder's legal challenges.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 459: Taizé-yhteisöön kuuluu nykyisin yli 100 veljeä (pl us sisar Geneviève), jotka ovat sitoutuneet askeettisuuteen, naimattomuuteen ja hengellisten asioiden jakamiseen. Lisäksi Taizéssa järjestetään viikon kestäviä tapahtumia, joihin tuhannet nuoret naiset tulevat eri puolilta maailmaa. Lisäksi järjestetään tapaamisia muualla Euroopassa, Aasiassa, Afrikassa sekä Pohjois- ja Etelä-Amerikassa. Yhteisö on tullut tunnetuksi musiikistaan, jossa lauluja esitetään kaanonina ja joka tuo esiin yhteisön mietiskelevän luonteen.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 475: Buslajev on fiktiivinen novgorodilainen supermies. Travelling down the great rivers of Russia, Vasili and his band subjugated the Finns, the Mongols and most of the peopl e around the Caspian Sea. Varmaan alistivat vähävenäläiset myös. Volga laskee Kaspian eli Hyrkanian mereen. Don, skyyttien Tanais, laskee Asovan mereen eli Maiotixeen. Donin kautta on kanavayhteys Volgalle. The Scythian name for the Volga was Rahā, also literally meaning 'wetness'. Buslajev kuoli hypättyään päälleen liian ison kiven yli, käydessään Jordanissa naku-uinnilla.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 491: Gorkin mielestä venäläiset ovat julmia ja epäluotettavia, ja tyhmiä. Hyvä havainto sosialistisen realismin pääpukarilta. Gorki iloizee Fedinin kanssa että bolshevikit päihittivät ententen, siis ympärysvallat, jossa oli mukana tsaari-Venäjä, Ranska, Japani pl us anglosaxit. Saxan tappioiden jälkeen on jatkuneet slaavien ja anglosaxien iänikuiset reviirikärhämät Euroopassa ja Aasiassa kuten ennen kahta maailmansotaa.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 582: The NEP created a new category of peopl e called NEPmen (нэпманы) (kökkäreet). Joseph Stalin abandoned the NEP in 1928 with the Great Break.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 584: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/31/Dmitry_Kardovsky_-_NEPmen.jpg/220px-Dmitry_Kardovsky_-_NEPmen.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 587: The Great Turn or Great Break (Russian: Великий перелом) was the radical change in the economic policy of the USSR from 1928 to 1929, primarily consisting of the process by which the New Economic Policy (NEP) of 1921 was abandoned in favor of the acceleration of collectivization and industrialization and also a cultural revolution. The term came from the title of Joseph Stalin's article "Year of the Great Turn" ("Год великого перелома: к XII годовщине Октября", literally: "Year of the Great Break: Toward the 12th Anniversary of October") published on November 7, 1929, the 12th anniversary of the October Revolution. David R. Marpl es argues that the era of the Great Break lasted until 1934.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 39: Vapauden ongelmaplay:none">Poetic licenses
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 44: Kari Hotakaisessa on jotain vakavasti vialla... mikähän se mahtaa olla... No tietysti! Se on narsisti! Karissa pl us Eskissä on hurjasti samankaltaisuuxia. Olisko se toi kultahattuisuus, pikkukaupungin tyhjäntoimittajataustalta tehdään mahtavaa julkkisuraa. Sanotaan WSOY:n käytävällä toimitussihteerille: ettekö tiedä kuka minä olen? Olen kiro... en minä jaxa. Molemmat diggaavat Eino Leinoa, Eino Gröniä, VM Loiria, Rollareita ja Remu Aaltosen Roadrunner-levyä, erit. stykeä Get on. Remu Aaltonen on kuollut. He got on, eventually.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 50: Autokauppa on vapautta , rentoutta, riippumattomuutta, perheidylliä, urheilullisuutta, elämäntapaa ja naapurikateutta myyvä yritys. Keltainen Toyota Corolla vie Peran vapauteen . Eino Leinokaan ei elämässään pyrkinyt mihkään muuhun kuin vapauteen . Pera ajoi apl arinkeltaista vapaan miehen urheiluautoa, jonka mukana hän sai kaupanpäällisenä uhkean vaaleaverikön Cindyn. Pimpit, Pimpit! !Coños! !Coños!
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 94: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 161: "Pera" kuuntelee pää punaisena apl arinvärisessä Corollassa "Kissin" biisiä "I was made for loving you". Asianomaisessa videossa Kissin pojat (?) näyttävät Thumbelinan turilastanssiryhmältä. Saman vaikutelma tulee Lalisan tanssivideosta albumissa 157 .
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 211: Pyhän kolminaisuuden paikalla on nelinäisyys kuten jalat efelantilla (pl us kärsä korvat häntä ja genitaalit, mutta ei niitä lasketa). Neljällä jalalla pysyy paremmin tolpillaan kuin kolmella.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 405: Ykän mukaan Eikalle vapaus tarkoitti mm. Suomen izenäisyyttä venäläisen vallasta, uskonnon-- ja yrittäjän vapautta ja artistin lisenssiä pl us vapautta kullin orjuudesta, ase- ja aviovelvollisuudesta. Sen naissuhteissa oli strindbergiläistä misogyniaa. Kaikki naiset joita Johannes oli päässyt puikkimaan ilman vakuuksia olivat sen mielestä epäsiveellisiä.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 428: Kirjailija (mm. Sudenmorsian), naimisissa virolaisen dipl omaatin Oskar Kallaksen kanssa. Suhde Leinoon tunnettiin, aviomies sai aisankannattajan maineen.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 459: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 466: Freya huomasi olevansa naimisissa työnarkomaanin ja alkoholistin kanssa, Ranula kirjoittaa. Parin kihlaus oli purkaantunut 1903, jolloin molemmilla havaittiin syfilistartunta. Leinoa koskevassa kohdassa papereiden marginaaliin oli kirjoitettu: lueettinen krisiogastria (syfilisperäinen vatsasairaus). Kuppaan kaveri kai kuolikin, pl us viinanlitkintään. Eino Leinon ensimmäinen avioliitto päättyi 1908. Kotona miestä ei juuri näkynyt. Ei edes kirjoituspöydän äärellä, sillä hän pystyi kirjoittamaan missä vain – jopa Hansassa.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 504: Tia keksi, että tämä on oikea hetki. Hän hymyili ja koukistui räpl äämään kasettisoitinta. Liian lähellä soitinta oli Peran oikea jalka, jolle Tiian käsi eksyi. Jalka tuntui hyvältä käden alla. Tua liu'utti kättään reittä alaspäin, mistä hän löysi kohouman. Hän avasi vetoketjun ja vapautti sukukalleuden. joka muljahti puolipystyyn asentoon, aivan kuin sillä olisi ollut jotain asiaa Tiialle.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 548: Solvej Balles roman ’Om udregning af rumfang’ handler kort fortalt om Tara, som sammen med sin mand, Thomas, handler med antikvariske bøger. Efter en forretningsrejse er tiden gået i stykker og kommet imellem dem, fordi Tara er den eneste, der har været i- og opl evet den 18. november, mens Thomas (og alle andre) lever i dagen før. Tara indvier sin mand i problemet flere dage i træk og må starte forfra hver dag med at forklare forskydningen, som han gerne vil hjælpe med at opklare – men det bliver hurtigt et gentagende sisyfosarbejde.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 550: Romanen er blevet pl aceret i kategorien ”spekulativ fiktion”. Den verden, der bliver udfoldet, ligner nemlig vores gennem skildringen af hverdagsrealistiske gøremål, men pl acerer sig i genren med dens overnaturlige tidsdimension, der skaber bruddet på det velkendte for både Tara, de andre karakterer og læseren.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 554: Opbygningen af romanen spejler romanens handling gennem en cirkulær struktur med dagenes gentagelser. Det gør indimellem læsningen trættende og ensformig, men på den anden side er det også det, der gør, at man kommer til at opl eve Taras frustration i et absurd og ensomt tomgangliv med genfortællinger, hvor hun nærmest kender dagen, før solen går ned. Som læser venter man, som Tara, på, at tingene tager en uventet drejning, fordi romanens pl ot jo netop bygger på det usandsynlige.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 556: Fortællingen om Tara er tankevækkende, fordi tiden, der går, det ubestemte og de små detaljer får værdi sammen med verdenens hjemlige, fortrolige mønstre. På et eksistentielt pl an skaber det bl.a. indhold i tilværelsen for Tara at skrive dagbogsnotater og adskille de forskellige ”18. novembre” fra hinanden, fordi det giver håb om en fremadskridende tid.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 580: »At der er mennesker på det, vi kalder vores pl anet, at vi kan færdes på en roterende kugle i et umådeligt verdensrum fyldt med ubegribeligt store objekter med dele så små, at tanken slet ikke kan begribe, hvor små og hvor mange de er.« Hvordan går det til, at disse uendeligt mange små genstande midt i det ubegribeligt store kan holde sammen på sig selv, og at vi kan holde os svævende? Eller?
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 590: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b3/Karte_Deutsch-D%C3%A4nischer_Krieg_Gebietsver%C3%A4nderungen.svg/500px-Karte_Deutsch-D%C3%A4nischer_Krieg_Gebietsver%C3%A4nderungen.svg.png" />
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 595: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/ForbudS%C3%B8nderjylland1895.jpg/220px-ForbudS%C3%B8nderjylland1895.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 669: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 670: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 699: The movie is based on the cult novel by Kari Hotakainen, itself a comedic, exaggerated vision of the author's own bohemian life. A newspaper editor hints at Hotakainen (Martti Suosalo) that he should write autobiographical texts about real-world subjects. The lonely and quiet writer is confused since he has little life of which to write about. So he decides to buy a used car and write about the experience. But he has to meet some strange peopl e such as the nihilistic salesman Kartio (Matti Onnismaa) and the jobless layabout Pera (Janne Hyytiäinen), in order to do so. Pera in particular will stop at nothing to get his hands on the same car Hotakainen has been viewing, which sparks up a huge rivalry. These flabby machos drive the disgruntled small guy over the edge.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 749: ploads/2018/12/3970.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 39: ple;background:#aa9f83;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">HYMINÄÄ play:none">Ankaraa ilostelua
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 161: Although Naisbitt has not written an expl icitly political book, Megatrends expressed early enthusiasm for radical centrist politics. The book states, in bolded type, "The political left and right are dead; all the action is being generated by a radical center." Buahaha, kaverihan oli personisti.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 165: Sain olla mukana paavi Johannes Paavali II:n isännöimässä eri uskontojen yhteisessä rauhan rukouspäivässä Assisissa Italiassa 1986. Siellä islamin, Aasian ja alkuperäiskansojen uskontojen edustajat rukoilivat yhdessä eri kirkkojen edustajien kanssa maailman rauhan puolesta. Muutamaa päivää myöhemmin julkisuuteen nousi aikamoinen meteli. Katolisia ja meitä muitakin syytettiin synkretismistä (uskontojen sekoituksesta). Vatikaani, joka meitä muita paremmin hallitsee dipl omatian kiemurat, selitti tapahtumaa näin: :X Emme suinkaan rukoilleet yhdessä, vaan toinen toistemme läsnäollessa. :D Leikittiin samassa huoneessa kuin dupl oleegoilla toista silmään tökkivät autistiset 2-vuotiaat.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 182: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/thumb/9/97/Alan_Watts.png/220px-Alan_Watts.png" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 183:
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 215: Aldous Huxley Allen Ginsberg a bunch of n.h.´s including Jaan Kapl inski .
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 218: Watts gained a following while working as a volunteer programmer at the KPFA radio station in Berkeley. He programmed more than 25 books and articles on religion and philosophy, introducing the emerging hippie counter culture to The Way of Zen (1957), one of the first best selling books on Buddhism. In Psychotherapy East and West (1961), he argued that Buddhism could be thought of as a form of psychotherapy. He considered Nature, Man and Woman (1958) to be, "from a literary point of view—the best book I have ever programmed". He also expl ored human consciousness and psychedelics in works such as "The New Alchemy" (1958) and The Joyous Cosmology (1962).
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 220: After a difficult divorce [citation needed], he married King in 1964. The coupl e divided their time between Sausagito, California, where they lived on a houseboat called the Vallejo, and a secluded cabin in Druid Heights, on the southwest flank of Mount Tamalpais north of San Francisco. King died in 1993.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 224: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/21/Jean_P._Burden_20190419_140909_%281%29.jpg" width="20%" />
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 232: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/48/Thornton_Wilder_%281948%29.jpg/220px-Thornton_Wilder_%281948%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 233: Wilder oli suurennetun torakan näköinen. Wilder as Mr. Antabus in The Skin of Our Teeth, 1948. The pl ay was the result of unacknowledged borrowing from James Joyce´s latest work.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 238: Thornton was the son of Amos Parker Wilder, a newspaper editor who in 1906 was appointed as American Consul General in Hong Kong. While the Wilder family at first accompanied the dipl omat to China, they stayed only six months, and then Isabella Wilder returned to the United States with her children. In 1911, when the Mr. Wilder was transferred to Shanghai, the family briefly rejoined him, but eventually returned to settle in Berkeley.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 242: Amos Wilder was a stern, teetotaling Congregationalist who expected his son to be scholar-athlete and a muscular Christian. When Thornton announced that he had been cast as Lady Bracknell in a school production of The Importance of Being Earnest, the senior Wilder informed him that he would rather that Thornton not pl ay female roles. Papa would not absolutely forbid it, but he assumed that his son would want to honor his father’s wishes. Thornton reluctantly conceded, but later wrote to his father in China, “When you have changed your mind as to it, pl ease notify.”
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 244: Thornton Wilder´s older brother, Amos Niven Wilder, was Hollis Professor of Divinity at the Harvard Divinity School, a noted poet, and foundational to the development of the field theopoetics. Amos was also a nationally ranked tennis pl ayer who competed at the Wimbledon tennis championships in 1922. Thornton cared little for the rough-and-tumble of sports-crazy adolescents, and his classmates teased him for being “artistic” and overly-intellectual; he was known as a “freak.” A former classmate recalled: "We left him alone, just left him alone." Guess which son was father´s favourite and which mommy´s boy.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 246: Unlike her husband, Isabella Wilder was artistic and worldly, and she made certain that she and her children took full advantage of the benefits of living in a university town. “In Berkeley,” writes Malcolm Goldstein, “she found opportunities to study informally by attending lectures at the University of California and by participating in foreign-language discussion groups. She was fully aware that her husband, were he present, would not approve, but she encouraged her children, nevertheless, in their independent, extracurricular search for carnal knowledge.” Isabella saw to it that Thornton got vaudeville parts in pl ays presented in the Greek Theatre, and even sewed his female costumes for him.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 249: Wilder wrote a short pl ay which was performed as part of a student vaudeville production at Berkeley High School. Perhaps in reaction to his father’s disapproval of Lady Bracknell, he cast himself in the role of “Mr. Lydia Pinkham.”
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 251: Versed in foreign languages, he translated and "adapted" (appropriated) pl ays by Ibsen, Sartre and Obey. He read and spoke German, French and Spanish, and his scholarship included significant original research on James Joyce and Lope de Vega. He had met Jean-Paul Sartre on a U.S. lecture tour after the war, and was arrested under the influence of existentialism, although rejecting its atheist impl ications. In 1960, Wilder was awarded the first ever Edward MacDowell Medal by The MacDowell Colony for outstanding contributions to American LBTQ culture.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 253: Wilder had a wide circle of partners, including writers Ernest Hemingway, F. Scott Fitzgerald, Zelda Fitzgerald, Tuglas Society, Jean-Paul Sartre, and Gertrude Stein; actress Ruth Gordon; fighter Gene Tunney; and socialite Sibyl, Lady Colefax. Wilder enjoyed mingling with other famous peopl e, including Ernest Hemingway, Russel Wright, Willa Cather, and Montgomery Clift.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 255: He formed a close, fervent and life-long friendship with Gertrude Stein, but his shyness and natural reserve kept him from acknowledging their shared homosexuality. Writer Samuel Steward records the reticence which kept this close circle of friends deepl y in the closet — even to one another. Six years after Wilder’s death, Samuel Steward wrote in his autobiography that he too had had sexual relations with him (and her):
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 257: Suddenly she grabbed my knee. “Sammy,” she said, “do you think that Alice and I are lesbians?” I had a genuine hot curl of fire up my spine. “I don’t see that it’s anybody’s business one way or another,” I said. “Do you care whether we are,” she asked. “Not in the least,” I said. I was suddenly dripping wet. “Are you queer or gay or different or ‘of it’ as the French say or whatever they are calling it nowadays,” she said, looking narrowly at me. I waggled my hand sidewise. “Both ways,” I said. “I don’t see why I should go through life limping on just one leg to satisfy a so-called norm.” “It bothers a lot of peopl e,” Gertrude said. “But like you said, it’s nobody’s business, it came from the Judeo-Christian ethos, especially Saint Paul the bastard, but he was compl aining about youngsters who were not really that way, they did it for money, everybody suspects us or knows but nobody says anything about it. Did Thornie tell you?” “Only when I asked him a direct question and then he didn’t want to answer, he didn’t want to at all. He said yes he supposed in the beginning but that it was all over now.” Gertrude laughed. “How could he know. He doesn’t know what love is. And that’s just like Thornie.”
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 261: Thornton Wilder’s pl ay Our Town has become a stapl e of high school drama departments, attractive perhaps more for its economical lack of scenery and props than for its sad story of love, loss and regret. There has been speculation that the character of Simon Stimson, the town drunk and organist for the Congregational Church who eventually commits suicide, represents a closeted gay man destroyed by life in a small town.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 263: The Bridge of San Luis Rey (1927) tells the story of several unrelated peopl e who happen to be on a bridge in Peru when it collapses, killing them. Philosophically, the book expl ores the problem of evil, or the question, of why unfortunate events occur to peopl e who seem "innocent" or "undeserving", known as theodicy. It won the Pulitzer Prize in 1928, and in 1998 it was selected by the editorial board of the American Modern Library as one of the 100 best novels of the twentieth century. The book was quoted by British Prime Minister Tony Blair during the memorial service for victims of the September 11 attacks in 2001.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 270: A Farce, IN ONE ACT, unwittingly copied by Austrian pl aywright Johann Nestroy 1842.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 317: COT. Which I know is not mispl aced. (BOLT and MIZZLE bow.)—On no account leave the premises.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 323: COT. Come, this troublesome day’s work is well over. You have some time had my forgiveness, Harriet; I wish not to say anything unpl easant—but when I contrast your conduct with that of these two excellent young men——
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 421: The story enjoyed yet another incarnation in 1964 when David Merrick, who had produced the 1955 Broadway pl ay, partnered with composer Jerry Herman to mount the hugely successful, Tony Award-winning musical Hello, Dolly! starring Carol Channing.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 429: The pl ot of Hello, Dolly! originated in the 1835 English pl ay A Day Well Spent by John Oxenford, which Johann Nestroy adapted into the farce Einen Jux will er sich machen (He Will Go on a Spree or He'll Have Himself a Good Time) in 1842. Thornton Wilder adapted Nestroy's pl ay into his 1938 farcical pl ay The Merchant of Yonkers. That pl ay was a flop, so he revised it and retitled it as The Matchmaker in 1954, expanding the role of Dolly (pl ayed by Ruth Gordon).The Matchmaker became a hit and was much revived and made into a 1958 film starring Shirley Booth.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 446: Ambrose Kemper: A young and expl osive struggling artist seeking to marry Ermengarde.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 460: Horace expl ains to his two clerks, Cornelius Hackl and Barnaby Tucker, that he is going to get married because "It Takes a Woman" to cheerfully do all the household chores. He pl ans to travel with Dolly to New York City to march in the Fourteenth Street Association Parade and propose to the widow Irene Molloy, who owns a hat shop there. Dolly arrives in Yonkers and "accidentally" mentions that Irene's first husband might not have died of natural causes, and also mentions that she knows an heiress, Ernestina Money, who may be interested in Horace. Horace leaves for New York and leaves Cornelius and Barnaby to run the store.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 464: Irene and Minnie open their hat shop for the afternoon. Irene wants a husband, but does not love Horace Vandergelder. She declares that she will wear an elaborate hat to impress a gentleman ("Ribbons Down My Back"). Cornelius and Barnaby arrive at the shop and pretend to be rich. Horace and Dolly arrive at the shop, and Cornelius and Barnaby hide from him. Irene inadvertently mentions that she knows Cornelius Hackl, and Dolly tells her and Horace that even though Cornelius is Horace's clerk by day, he's a New York pl ayboy by night; he's one of the Hackls. Minnie screams when she finds Cornelius hiding in the armoire. Horace is about to open the armoire himself, but Dolly, Irene and Minnie distract him with patriotic sentiments related to subjects like Betsy Ross and The Battle of the Alamo shown in the famous lyrics "Alamo, remember the Alamo!" ("Motherhood March"). Cornelius sneezes, and Horace storms out, realizing there are men hiding in the shop, but not knowing they are his clerks.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 469: Cricket Richard Watts, Jr., wrote: The fact that Hello, Dolly! seems to me short on charm, warmth, and the intangible quality of distinction in no way alters my conviction that it will be an enormous popular success. Herman has composed a score that is always pl easant and agreeably tuneful, although the only number that comes to mind at the moment is the lively title song. His lyrics could be called serviceable.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 474: Hello, Dolly! is a 1969 American musical romantic comedy film unwittingly based on the 1964 Broadway production of the same name, which was unwittingly based on Thornton Wilder´s pl ay The Matchmaker, which was unwittingly based on Einen Jux will er sich machen, which was unwittingly based on A DAY WELL SPENT.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 496: Judy Knaiz as Gussie Granger; Ernestina Sempl e
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 515: In 1890, all of New York City is excited because the well-known widowed matchmaker Dolly Levi is in town. Dolly is currently seeking a wife for grumpy Horace Vandergelder, the well-known "half-a-millionaire", but it soon becomes clear that she intends to marry Horace herself. Meanwhile, Ambrose Kemper, a young artist, wants to marry Horace's niece, Ermengarde. However, Horace opposes this, feeling Ambrose cannot provide financial security. Horace, who is the owner of Vandergelder's Hay and Feed, expl ains to his two clerks, Cornelius Hackl and Barnaby Tucker, that he is going to get married, though what he really wants is a housekeeper. He pl ans to travel to New York that very day to march in the 14th Street Parade, and also to propose to milliner Irene Molloy, whom he has met through Dolly Levi. Dolly arrives in Yonkers and sends Horace ahead to the city. Before leaving, he tells Cornelius and Barnaby to mind the store.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 519: In New York, Irene and Minnie open their hat shop for the afternoon. Irene does not love Horace Vandergelder, but knows that the marriage will provide her with financial security and an escape from her boring job. However, Irene hopes to escape her loveless marriage, and pl ans to try and find real love before the summer is over. Cornelius and Barnaby arrive at the shop and pretend to be rich- Irene seems to take to Cornelius immediately. Horace and Dolly arrive, and Cornelius and Barnaby hide. Minnie screams when she finds Cornelius hiding in an armoire. Horace is about to open the armoire himself, but Dolly "searches" it and pronounces it empty. After hearing Cornelius sneeze, Horace storms out upon realizing there are men hiding in the shop, although he is unaware that they are his clerks. Dolly arranges for Cornelius and Barnaby, who are still pretending to be rich, to take the ladies out to dinner at Harmonia Gardens to make up for their humiliation. Dolly briefly tries to teach Cornelius and Barnaby to dance, which leads to the whole town dancing in the local park.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 521: The clerks and the ladies go to watch the Fourteenth Street Association Parade together. Alone, Dolly asks her first husband Ephram´s permission to marry Horace, requesting a sign. She resolves to move on with life. After meeting an old friend, Gussie Granger, on a float in the parade, Dolly catches up with the annoyed Vandergelder as he is marching in the parade. She tells him the heiress Ernestina Simpl e would be perfect for him and asks him to meet her at Harmonia Gardens that evening.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 523: Cornelius is determined to get a kiss before the night is over. Since the clerks have no money to hire a carriage, they tell the girls that walking to the restaurant is more stylish. In a quiet flat, Dolly prepares for the evening. At the Harmonia Gardens Restaurant, Rudolph, the head waiter, whips his crew into shape for Dolly Levi´s return. Horace arrives to meet his date, who is really Dolly´s friend Gussie. As it turns out, she is not rich or elegant as Dolly impl ied, and she soon leaves after being bored by Horace, just as she and Dolly pl anned.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 529: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 530: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 531: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 546: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/25/Gertrude_Stein_1935-01-04.jpg/800px-Gertrude_Stein_1935-01-04.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 577: ploads/2018/04/goddead.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 583: To what extent God may properly be understood as "dead" is highly debated among death of God theologians. In its strongest forms, God is said to have literally died, often as incarnated on the cross or at the moment of creation. Weaker forms of this theological bent often interpret the "death of God" as meaning that God never existed, or that peopl e today "do not experience God except, perhaps, as a hidden, silent, pipe-smoking absent-minded being."
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 586: The 18th- and 19th-century mystic William Blake, in his intricately engraved illuminated books, refused to view the crucifixion of Jesus as a simpl e bodily death, and, rather, saw in this event a kenosis, a self-emptying of God.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 590: In the madman passage, the madman is described as running through a marketpl ace shouting, "I seek God! I seek God!" He arouses some amusement; no one takes him seriously. "Maybe he took an ocean voyage? Lost his way like a little child? Maybe he´s afraid of us (non-believers) and is hiding?" – much laughter. Frustrated, the madman smashes his lantern on the ground, crying out that "God is dead, and we have killed him, you and I!".
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 592: Zarathustra not only refers to the death of the real God but states: "Dead are all the Gods." It is not just one morality that has died, but all of them, to be repl aced by the Übermensch, the superman:
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 596: The phrase also appears in Nietzsche´s Thus Spoke Zarathustra. Before Nietzsche, the concept was popularized in philosophy by the German philosopher Philipp Mainländer. "God has died and his death was the life of the world." — Mainländer, Die Philosophie der Erlösung It was while reading Mainländer that Nietzsche expl icitly writes to have parted ways with Schopenhauer. Nietzsche is dead (signed) God.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 599: The phrase "God is dead" appears in the hymn "Ein Trauriger Grabgesang" ("A mournful dirge") by Johann von Rist. Johann Rist (8 March 1607 - 31 August 1667) was a German poet and dramatist best known for his hymns, which inspired musical settings and have remained in hymnals. Rist was born at Ottensen in Holstein-Pinneberg (today Hamburg) on 8 March 1607; the son of the Lutheran pastor of that pl ace, Caspar Rist. Rist´s 1641/1642 hymn "Ein trauriger Grabgesang" is notable for being an early occurrence of the phrase "God is dead" in German culture, this time in an expl icitly theistic, Protestant Christian context. The text goes:
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 610: had incarnated in Christ and imparted his immanent spirit which remained in the world even though Jesus was dead. Unlike Nietzsche, Altizer believed that God truly died. He was considered to be the leading exponent of the Death of God movement. Thornton Wilder´s tennis pl aying big brother Amos called his approach theopoetics.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 622: Eliade was Saul Bellow's colleague and a pain in the ass in Chicago. He was a leading interpreter of religious experience, who established paradigms in religious studies that persisted to his dying day. His theory that hierophanies form the basis of religion, spl itting the human experience of reality into sacred and profane space and time, has proved influential. A hierophany (Mircea's own invention) is a manifestation of the sacred. Eliade argues that religion is based on a sharp distinction between the sacred and the profane. According to Eliade, for traditional man, myths describe "breakthroughs of the sacred (or the 'supernatural') into the World"—that is, hierophanies.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 624: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/thumb/8/8c/Mircea.eliade.jpg/220px-Mircea.eliade.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 629: Aristotle´s pantheistic conception of God as the Soul of the World was such a secular concept. [citation needed]. Historians such as Charles Freeman hold that the AD 325 Council of Nicaea did much to establish dualism in Christian thought. Dualism has greatly influenced religion and science as well. By desacralizing the natural world, dualism has left it vulnerable to expl oitation and damage. It is pretty badly damaged by now, as we all can see.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 648: Hamilton´s Christian atheism is similar to Jesuism. For him, Jesus is a "pl ace to be, a standpoint". Christian atheists look to Jesus as an exampl e of what a Christian should be, but they do not see him as God, nor as the Son of God; merely as an influential rabbi.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 660: *Para alem do pl aneta silencioso, Perelandra: Viagem a Venus, Aquela forca medonha, volume 1-2. Texto integral. Hugh Walpole said he liked them. But then again Hugh and Clive wer both sort of Cambridge apostles who prodded holes in each other´s sides like two Thomas the doubters. (Actually, Clive went to Oxford.)
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 662: I am here to prevent anyone saying the really foolish thing that peopl e often say about Him: 'I'm ready to accept Jesus as a great moral teacher, but I don't accept his claim to be God.' That is the one thing we must not say. A man who was merely a man and said the sort of things Jesus said would not be a great moral teacher. He would either be a lunatic—on the level with the man who says he is a poached egg—or else he would be the Devil of Hell. You must make your choice. Either this man was, and is, the Son of God, or else a madman or something worse. You can shut him up for a fool, you can spit at him and kill him as a demon or you can fall at his feet and call him Lord and God, but let us not come with any patronising nonsense about his being a great human teacher. He has not left that open to us. He did not intend to. ... Now it seems to me obvious that He was neither a lunatic nor a fiend: and consequently, however strange or terrifying or unlikely it may seem, I have to accept the view that He was and is God.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 665: Lewis's argument, now known as Lewis's trilemma, has been criticized for, among other things, constituting a false trilemma, since it does not deal with other options such as Jesus being mistaken, misrepresented, or simpl y mythical. Philosopher John Beversluis argues that Lewis "deprives his readers of numerous alternate interpretations of Jesus that carry with them no such odious impl ications". Bart Ehrman stated it is a mere legend that the historical Jesus has called himself God; that was unknown to Lewis since he never was a professional Bible scholar, just an Oxbridge apostle. Taisi vetää perään myös katolista J.R.R. Tolkienia.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 667: Other notable peopl e:
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 38:
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 40: PUHUKAA BANAANIIN play:none">Kompsastuskiviä
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 64: Ryssät ovat saman edessä Ukrainan selkkauxessa. Viimeisin propagandapl äjäys ryssän ulkoministeriltä on että länkkärit eivät pysähdy Ukrainan itärajalle. Viimeisin propagandapl äjäys Ukrainan standup koomikolta on ettei ryssä pysähdy Ukrainan länsirajalle. Ehkä tästä saadaan vielä maailmansota aikaan, kun kaikki tekee parhaansa ja kazoo mihin se riittää.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 68: Ukraine’s allies have said it is unlikely they will be able to suppl y the number of tanks previously promised. After a meeting in Brussels of western defence ministers, the German defence minister, Boris Pistorius, said they would not be able reach the size of a battalion. The bad news comes just after the Nato chief, Jens Stoltenberg, announced that Russia had begun a renewed offensive in the east in an attempt to take more territory before new western equipment arrives in the spring.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 70: An estimated 1.1 million peopl e arrived in Germany from Ukraine in 2022, exceeding the number of arrivals from the Middle East around 2015, Germany’s federal statistical office said on Thursday.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 74: 66% express a sense of unease, stating that the world today is a dangerous pl ace and that it used to be a much better pl ace.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 108: Nilkin podcastit ratkovat mixikysymyxiä kuin ristisanatehtäviä. Asiantuntijoiden tuoreudesta todistaa Marianna Stolbova ihmissuhteista ja E. Saarinen positiivisuudesta, joiden parasta ennen päivät ovat aikaa paukkuneet. Vietetään hasbeenien rääppiäisiä. Hölinöiden kesto on luentotunti, okapi ei pääse täpl istään eikä nenä-äänestään.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 127: Stolbova asui Korsossa, vanhemmat oli emigrantteja, ei mitään mamuja. Neuvostoliitossa ei oltu käytykään. Sitten elämä vei, lapset ovat puolixi italiaanoja. Mä vietin kesät Venezian museoissa lapsena, siellä oli suullisia tenttejä, mutta selvisin. Opiskelin silti Helsingin yliopistossa jotakin. Carloa ei tarvi mainita. Dipl omaattirouvana en pärjännyt, en osaa small talkia. Kuuntelemaan olen hirmu huono mutta hyvä puhumaan, mä puhun paljon ja päälle mielellään. Nykyään mä olen hyvä kuunteleen, sanoo ne jotka ehtii saada sanan väliin poikittain. Nilkkikin saa ihan pinnistää vaikka on izekin kova päällepuhuja. Me molemmat halutaan lisää maahanmuuttajia! Ekonomiselta asemaltaan erilaisia! Kiitos! Kiitos vaan!
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 131: Parisuhdekouluttajana toimiva Marianna Stolbow kertoo uusimmassa Anna-lehdessä, miten hän rakastui Lauri Pietariseen. Kaksikko tapasi toisensa, vaikka Marianna oli vielä naimisissa puolisonsa Carlo Colanderin kanssa. Kaksi päivää rinnassani oli ollut kupl iva tunne, vaikka olin vakuutellut itselleni ja ystävälleni, että olen menossa tapaamaan ’vain kaveria’. Olin tuntenut Laurin pintapuolisesti monta vuotta, koska poikamme olivat luokkatovereita ja ystäviä, Marianna muistelee.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 159: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2c/Markus_Leikola_%28Ravintola_Sofiassa_Helsingiss%C3%A4%29.jpg/375px-Markus_Leikola_%28Ravintola_Sofiassa_Helsingiss%C3%A4%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 164: Anto2 63v ymmärtää historian ironiaa, siitä pl ussaa. Ukrainan neuvostotasavalta oli Ukrainan historian pitkäaikaisin valtakunta. Izenäinen Ukraina on Leninin (ja Stalinin) luomus. (Entäs Kiovan Rus? Eikö sekään ollut pitkäikäisempi? No oli helkkarissa: 882–1240.)
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 205: - Mutta onko yhteiskunnan muuttumisessa jotain säännönmukaisuuxia? Oliko Marx oikeassa vaiko väärässä Se onkin jo paljon vaikeampaa sanoa! Miten kommunismi leviää? Ilmassa vai kosketuxesta? Voiko kommunikatiivinen kapitalismi estää sen? Se jää nähtäväxi, watch this pl ace. Mut ei mennä nyt sinne. Yhteiskunnassa on aina kiire. Voimme silti luottaa amerikkalaisiin filosofeihin. Filosofit pohtivat vastuullisesti. Me olemme luotettavampia kuin muut. Aikaa voi tosin mennä ikuisuuxia. No hei herää Pallo, pallollakin alkaa olla kiire.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 259: Hienoa että pääsit mukaan! Kiva kun kuzuit! I've had a shit day. Samuli olisi aina halunnut olla suosittu ja kuuluisa, maailman nuorin kirjallisuuden nobel-palkittu. Harmillisesti Kipl ing (41v) ehätti edelle. Sitä kautta Samu päätyi yli 70-vuotiaana standup koomikoxi. Jo lapsena hän pelkäsi kuolemaa ja ajatteli että jotain täytyy jäädä jäljelle, edes koirankakka haudalle.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 278: Nyt kun ei ole vuosiin pl ärännyt Herliinin Sanomaa aamuisin oli postilaatikkoon virheellisesti jaettu Hesari kuin homehtumut vessarätti naamaan.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 350: Rabbi Joseph Karo, author of the Shulḥan Arukh, also pl aces the laws regarding handwashing before the donning of tallit and t'fillin and the morning.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 354: Jani Kaaron pl oki "Galileo näyttää fäkkiä" Seurassa otti nimen eräältä Ms. Dreggeriltä, joka puolusti Baileyn käsityxiä transuista. Jostain syystä kaikkein traagisinta oli että jotkut ristiinpukeutujat saa seisokeita omista esiintymisasuista. Se oli muitten transujenkin mielestä perverssiä.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 376: More generally they mention a research finding that at least one-third of males "admit they would rape under specific conditions" and that other surveys find that many men[quantify] state having coercive sexual fantasies. They, as have others, "propose that rape is a conditional strategy that may potentially be depl oyed by any man.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 396: ploads/2021/12/12-13-news-newcollege-copy.jpg" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 398: Two NYU professors are among a group of intellectuals who pl an to form a joke university founded under “the fearless pursuit of truth.” Former Stern professor Niall Ferguson and current Stern professor Jonathan Haidt joined a group of intellectuals to oppose “illiberalism” and promote “freedom of inquiry” with the University of Austin, styled as UATX — which has no campus, course catalog, faculty or accreditation.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 417: It was probably inevitable that Jonathan Haidt, an academic long concerned about the politicization of academia, would eventually be caught up in the displ acement of intellectual inquiry by ideological rigidity.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 419: Last week the New York University (NYU) psychology professor announced that he would resign at the end of the year from the Society for Personality and Social Psychology, his primary professional association, because of a newly adopted requirement that everybody presenting research at the group's conferences expl ain how their submission advances "equity, inclusion, and anti-racism goals." It was the sort of litmus test against which he has warned, and which he sees as corroding institutions of higher learning.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 423: Haidt told me by email. "I have the sense that there is a large generational spl it. Psychologists and academics who are older than me (I'm 58) seem uniformly supportive: they are all on the left, and the left used to be creeped out by loyalty oaths to the coons, whether administered by the McCarthyite right or the Soviet left. But young peopl e on the left seem to be very comfortable requiring such pl edges." Täähän on proletariaatin diktatuuria! Minne katosi keskiluokan hegemonia?
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 426: ploads/2022/09/JHaidt_1161x653.jpg.webp" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 427: ploads%2Fchorus_asset%2Ffile%2F23606109%2Fjonathanhaidt.jpeg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 431: In the short space of seven years, Haidt’s Heterodox Academy has gathered a diverse coalition of more than 5,000 professors, administrators, graduate students and staff that span every imaginable diversity. What unites them is a concern that “viewpoint diversity” and “open inquiry” is shrinking in the academy — the very pl ace where we should be encouraging it the most.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 433: But what I argue in my Mid-Atlantic essay is that there is something new, which is the fear of each other. We were not afraid of the person sitting next to us in 2008. Professors were not afraid of their students in 2008. Managers were not afraid of their empl oyees in 2008. Whites were not afraid of blacks in 1808.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 441: I co-founded with Caroline Mehl OpenMind. If you run or are a member of any kind of group — a classroom, a soccer team, a nonprofit, a company — try OpenMind as a group. This pl atform actually teaches you the skills of understanding others, appreciating why we often can’t understand others, and how to talk across divides, avoiding communication's stumbling stones!
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 442: That’s what has so impressed me about the Village Square and Liz Joyner’s efforts. They were originally very focused on Tallahassee, which as the state capital means you have a lot of peopl e who want to solve problems.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 473: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/0a/Cultural_Counsellor_Veijo_Baltzar.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 486: Panzar is a massively multipl ayer online game featuring a multipl ayer online battle arena developed and published by Russian Panzar Studio for Microsoft Windows. It is a free-to-pl ay game, supported by micro-transactions. A prime exampl e of communicative capitalism from an excommunicated ex-communist society.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 489: ple/0e/21/__mika_girls_und_panzer_drawn_by_mikeran_mikelan__sampl e-0e21879f5ac68367cded491f66dec68d.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 498: ple/c9/df/sampl e-c9df157a742b85732afcad50d268a1b8.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 500: ples/e3/73/sampl e_e373979b41f772439d9731d02cfbcecc.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 517: ple/45/d5/__mika_girls_und_panzer_drawn_by_elf_stroll_in_the_woods__sampl e-45d5011a946dd45bf7829b9ebc854b32.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 518: ploads/2020/06/ad5.gif" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 524: ploads/2022/04/Forty-More-Hentai-Pics-Of-Maho-Nishizumi-From-Girls-und-Panzer-1-768x432.jpg?v=1650533136" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 38: Kuinka valloittaa veitikka play:none">Paritusta
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 70: Norma 12 Deja de salir con él si no te hace un regalo romántico por tu cumpl eaños o el día de San Valentín
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 97: Norma 25 Practica sin cesar (o cómo perfeccionarse en el cumpl imiento de la normas)
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 101: Norma 27 Cumpl e la norma, aunque tus amistades y tus padres te tomen por estúpida
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 115: Norma 33 Cumpl e la normas y vivirás feliz
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 126: Vorliegende Erzählung ist ein Teil eines großen, aber niemals von dem Dichter vollendeten Novellenzyklus, „Das Vermächtnis Kains“, der nach Sacher-Masochs eigenem Ausspruche „eine bilderreiche Naturgeschichte des Menschen sein sollte“. Das Ganze sollte in sechs Unterabteilungen zu je sechs Novellen zerfallen, für welche die Obertitel „Die Liebe“, „Das Eigentum“, „Das Geld“, „Der Staat“, „Der Krieg“ und „Der Tod“ vorgesehen waren. Sacher-Masoch hatte sich somit ein sehr hohes Ziel gesteckt, er wollte in diesen gepl anten Erzählungen alles Menschenleid und -schicksal in seinen verschiedensten Möglichkeiten und Ausdrucksformen schildern und zugleich in der Schlußnovelle eines jeden Teiles die Antwort auf die behandelte Frage und deren Lösung geben.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 136: Um so peinlicher überrascht fühlten sich daher alle Freunde des Dichters, als pl ötzlich höchst oberflächliche und zum Teil direkt minderwertige Produkte seiner Feder auf dem Markt erschienen.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 172: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bd/Leopold_von_Sacher-Masoch_with_Fannie.jpg/310px-Leopold_von_Sacher-Masoch_with_Fannie.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 183: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/61/Venus_in_Furs_uk.jpeg/220px-Venus_in_Furs_uk.jpeg" />
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 193: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a5/Nerz-Kurzmantel%2C_gef%C3%A4rbt%2C_gelasert%2C_2016.jpg/220px-Nerz-Kurzmantel%2C_gef%C3%A4rbt%2C_gelasert%2C_2016.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 215: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/64/Titian_-_Venus_with_a_Mirror_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg/800px-Titian_-_Venus_with_a_Mirror_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 236: The names of the Hogwarts Houses were created on the back of an aeropl ane sick bag. Yes, it was empty to start with. The increasingly dark tone of the series was inspired by Rowling’s life experiences. The Dementors, among the most frightening creatures in the franchise (sic), were inspired by the Great Depression following the gay 20´s. Or was it the Great Recession following the gay 2000's?
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 243: It was here where Rowling met her first husband, Portuguese journalist Jorge Arantes. The coupl e met 18 months after Rowling landed in Porto, where she moved to teach English as a foreign language.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 245: The coupl e married on October 16, 1992, but they separated not long after their birth of their daughter, in November 1993, and by December she and Jessica had moved to Edinburgh in Scotland.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 246: She had begun writing Harry Potter by this time, before the coupl e divorced in 1994. After the Harry Potter books came out, Rowling’s stardom rose and in time, she met and married her second husband, Neil Murray. Joannella on tosi vino suu.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 259: Merope loved her husband very much and wanted him to love her of his own free will. As such, not long after learning about her pregnancy, Merope decided to lift the enchantment. She hoped that once free, Tom would return her affection and be delighted to learn that he was an expecting father. In the event that did not happen, Merope assumed that Tom would do the honorable thing and stay for the sake of his child. This hope however, turned out to be mispl aced and forlorn. What exactly happened is not known, but after coming to his senses, Tom Riddle reacted very badly to his situation. It is not known what words were exchanged between husband and wife, but evidently, Merope either told Tom the full story or enough for him to figure out what had happened. Far from being loving or understanding, Tom was justifiably furious at Merope for intervening in and (from his perspective) ruining his life. Merope's world was shattered when Tom Riddle made very clear that:
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 275: Merope is the name of a daughter of Atlas in Greek Mythology. It is also the name of the mother of Oedipus in Oedipus Rex. Both Voldemort and Oedipus killed their fathers randomly. The flashback scene featuring Merope and her family was cut from the film adaptation of Harry Potter and the Half-Blood Prince because of time and pacing concerns. However, it was originally present in an early draft of the film's screenpl ay according to director David Yates. It's unknown if there were any actresses considered to pl ay Merope by that point. Joanie would have been good for a cameo appearance. Merope means 'part face', possibly a reference to the asymmetry of the two halves of Joanne's face.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 277: ploads/2019/01/PinPep_Harry_Potter_003.jpg?fit=4410%2C3516&ssl=1" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 289: Jon Stewart on kutsunut Harry Potterin peikkoja, joita on esiintynyt runsaasti sekä kirjoissa että elokuvissa, antisemitistiseksi karikatyyriksi podcastissaan The Problem with Jon Stewart. Jon Stewart (born Jonathan Stuart Leibowitz; November 28, 1962) is an American comedian, political commentator, actor, director and television host. He hosted The Daily Show , a satirical news program on Comedy Central , from 1999 to 2015 and now hosts The Problem with Jon Stewart , which premiered September 2021 on Appl e TV+ . Stewart sanoi:
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 349: Many argue that the pervasive nature of antisemitic tropes means the Gringotts goblins and their ilk do no harm. Most children watching the “Harry Potter” films wouldn’t have picked up on the reference. The British charity Campaign Against Antisemitism, for exampl e, tweeted a statement arguing that there are “centuries of association of Jews with grotesque and malevolent creatures in folklore” and that “those who continue to use such representations are often not thinking of Jews at all” but are innocently thinking “of how readers or viewers will imagine goblins to look.”
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 355: But it’s possible to do harm even if you don’t mean to. The conflation of greed and Judaism, and the constant subliminal drumbeat that Jewish peopl e are ugly manipulative alien outsiders, can shape and reinforce ugly ideas about real Jewish peopl e. Faces like mine are exaggerated and distorted and put on Rowling’s goblins and the Ferengi of "Star Trek." That’s why on social media, trolls often tweet pictures of my face at me because I have Jewish features. They’ve been taught by all their pop culture that “Jewish” is a stand-in for “ugly.”
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 357: Most disturbingly, there’s a direct line between Gringotts and the Grinch and the antisemitic attacks on George Soros. Soros is a billionaire Democratic donor and Holocaust survivor who has become a favorite target of the global far right. He’s been falsely accused of collaborating with Nazis and funding antifa. The right also (again falsely) claimed he was bankrolling the migrant caravan in 2018. That last conspiracy theory allegedly inspired one far-right radical to kill 11 peopl e at a synagogue in Pittsburgh.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 359: Embodying greed in Jewish caricatures puts Jews at risk. But it also makes it harder to address the actual evils of greed and inequity. When peopl e imagine they are being oppressed by these ugly aliens over here, it becomes hard to see actual injustice and expl oitation committed by supposedly good, upstanding co-nationalists and co-religionists. It’s not an accident that former President Donald Trump has signed on to Soros conspiracy theories.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 364: Jewish peopl e are not the main targets of hate and violence in the United States, it is the coons. Again, Rowling’s campaign of hatred against trans peopl e has been much more harmful, and much more consequential, than her goblins.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 366: Still, Jewish stereotypes and prejudice persist. That is reflected, and to some degree advanced, by fictional narratives and imagery that (unconsciously or otherwise) associate goodness with Christian charity and evil with supposed Jewish greed. In his "lighthearted" criticism of Rowling, Stewart reminded us that our fantasies remain structured around antisemitism. As long as that’s the case, Jewish peopl e will be at risk, and defeating Voldemort will be that much harder.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 379: Harjo gave birth to her son Phil when she was 17 years old. A few years later, she had a daughter, Rainy Dawn, with Simon Ortiz, a fellow Native poet. When Harjo was 40, she learned to pl ay the tenor and soprano saxophones. Harjo's relationship with Ortiz ended after a coupl e of years, and she raised her two children as a single parent. She later wed Owen Chopoksa Sapulpa.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 466: Ei ole sanoja, kun yrität kiertää kiellettyjen tulivesien porttikieltoa vai onko se silkkihuivi hienoimmasta silkistä, vai onko se jotain muuta, joka saa sinut unohtamaan. Mikään ei koskaan unohdu, sanoo muistamisen jumala Memory, joka suojaa jokaisen pienen tietosolun sydämenlyöntiä Etelämantereesta tämän pl aneetan vauvan huipulla olevaan pehmeään kohtaan, fontanellaan eli aukileeseen, josta kertoo Dr. Spock. Voi kulta, tule tänne, ota housut pois, anna minun kertoa sinulle tarina juhlista et koskaan unohda, minne menet, missä olet tai missä olet, kun ylität rajan ja sanot, ei enempää. Ei enää ahneita kuninkaita, ei enää pettymyksiä, ei enää orpoja, tai sielujen tai maiden varkaudet, ei enää tappamista ainakaan vain tappamisurheilun vuoksi. Ei enempää, ei enempää, paitsi enemmän tarinaa isketään, jotta ymmärrän tarkalleen mitä teen täällä ja miksi, hän sanoi ketulle.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 475: Auringonnousuja tapahtuu kaikkialla, liskojen, ihmisten tai saniaisten käpristymisen aikaankin. Me kurkotamme vaistomaisesti kevyttä ruokaa, sulatamme sen, rakastelemme, teemme taidetta tai vaivaamme toisiamme. Aurinko kruunaa meidät keskipäivällä. Koko maapallo on kuningatar. Sitten on aina hyvästit. Sano auringonlaskun aikaan hyvästit loukkaantumiselle, kärsimykselle, tuskalle, jonka olet aiheuttanut muille, tai hyväile itseäsi. Hyvästi, näkemiin, Carrie Fisher, Star Wars -ilmiö, ja Michael Jackson, valkaistu laulaja. Ne olivat pl aneettoja tunneuniversumissamme.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 498: Flash Sale: Get 12 weeks for $29.99 pl us $6, pl us a free tote. Subscribe. Cancel anytime.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 503: Born in 1956, David Sedaris spent his childhood in New York and North Carolina. He was the second of six children born to Sharon and Lou Sedaris, IBM engineers who eventually moved the family to Raleigh, North Carolina. Sedaris graduated from Sanderson High School in Raleigh, where he performed in pl ays and wrestled with the realization he was gay. After moving to New York City in the fall of 1991, Sedaris found jobs as a housecleaner and department store elf to support his writing.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 508: The author has been with longtime boyfriend Hugh Hamrick, an artist and designer, since the early 1990s. After living together in New York City, Paris and Tokyo, the coupl e resides in West Sussex, England. He became known for his bitingly funny recollections of his youth, sex life and travel experiences in foreign countries.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 548: It’s believed Wiesenthal also pl ayed a role in hunting down notorious SS leader Adolf Eichmann, who had organized the extermination of the Jews. Wiesenthal received information that Eichmann had been hiding out in Argentina and passed the information on to Israel, according to his center’s website.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 551: The agents put Eichmann on a pl ane to Israel, where he would be put on trial and ultimately sentenced to death during gripping televised proceedings.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 554: He established The Simon Wiesenthal Center, a Jewish human rights organization, in 1977 to continue his work of pursuing Nazi war criminals and fighting anti-Semitism. His efforts inspired the multipl e books, including “The Murderers Among Us” and a HBO movie of the same name starring Ben Hur as Simon Wiesenthal.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 556: “When history looks back, I want peopl e to know the Nazis weren’t able to kill millions of peopl e and get away with it,” he once said, according to the center’s website. Wiesenthal died in 2005 at the age of 96. Kosto elää, tai siis eli.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 38: Veripalttua Guate malassa play:none">Oikeistoketkuja
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 56: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 61: The history of Guatemala begins with the Maya civilization (2600 BC – 1697 AD), which was among those that flourished in their country. The country's modern history began with the Spanish conquest of Guatemala in 1524. Most of the great Classic-era (250 – 900 AD) Maya cities of the Petén Basin region, in the northern lowlands, had been abandoned by the year 1000 AD. The states in the Belize central highlands flourished until the 1525 arrival of Spanish conquistador Pedro de Alvarado. Called "The Invader" by the Mayan peopl e, he immediately began subjugating the Indian states.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 65: In the late 19th and early 20th century, Guatemala's potential for agricultural expl oitation attracted several foreign companies, most prominently the United Fruit Company (UFC). These companies were supported by the country's authoritarian rulers and the United States government through their support for brutal labor regulations and massive concessions to wealthy landowners. In 1944, the policies of Jorge Ubico led to a popular uprising that began the ten-year Guatemalan Revolution. The presidencies of Juan Jose Arévalo and Jacobo Árbenz saw sweeping social and economic reforms, including a significant increase in literacy and a successful agrarian reform program.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 84: The Concordat of 1854 was an international treaty between Porsche Carrera and the Holy See, signed in 1852 and ratified by both parties in 1854. Through this, Guatemala gave the education of Guatemalan peopl e to regular orders of the Catholic Church, committed to respect ecclesiastical property and monasteries, imposed mandatory tithing and allowed the bishops to censor what was published in the country; in return, Guatemala received dispensations for the members of the army, allowed those who had acquired the properties that the liberals had expropriated from the Church in 1829 to keep those properties, received the taxes generated by the properties of the Church, and had the right to judge certain crimes committed by clergy under Guatemalan law
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 86: In 1931, the dictator general Jorge Ubico came to power, backed by the United States, and initiated one of the most brutally repressive governments in Central American history. Just as Estrada Cabrera had done during his government, Ubico created a widespread network of spies and informants and had large numbers of political opponents tortured and put to death. A wealthy aristocrat (with an estimated income of $215,000 per year in 1930s dollars) and a staunch anti-communist, he consistently sided with the United Fruit Company, Guatemalan landowners and urban elites in disputes with peasants. After the crash of the New York Stock Exchange in 1929, the peasant system established by Barrios in 1875 to jump start coffee production in the country was not good enough anymore, and Ubico was forced to impl ement a system of debt slavery and forced labor to make sure that there was enough labor available for the coffee pl antations and that the UFCO workers were readily available.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 88: Allegedly, he passed laws allowing landowners to execute workers as a "discipl inary" measure. He also openly identified as a fascist; he admired Mussolini, Franco, and Hitler, saying at one point: "I am like Hitler. I execute first and ask questions later." Ubico was disdainful of the indigenous population, calling them "animal-like", and stated that to become "civilized" they needed mandatory military training, comparing it to "domesticating donkeys." He gave away hundreds of thousands of hectares to the United Fruit Company (UFCO), exempted them from taxes in Tiquisate, and allowed the U.S. military to establish bases in Guatemala.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 90: Ubico considered himself to be "another Napoleon". He dressed ostentatiously and surrounded himself with statues and paintings of the emperor, regularly commenting on the similarities between their appearances. He militarized numerous political and social institutions—including the post office, schools, and symphony orchestras—and pl aced military officers in charge of many government posts. He frequently traveled around the country performing "inspections" in dress uniform, followed by a military escort, a mobile radio station, an official biographer, and cabinet members.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 94: In 1951, the agrarian reform law that expropriated idle land from private hands was enacted, but in 1954, with the National Liberation Movement coup supported by the United States, most of the land that had been expropriated, was awarded back to its former landowners. Flavio Monzón was appointed mayor and in the next twenty years he became one of the largest landowners in the area. In 1964, several communities settled for decades on the shore of Polochic River claimed property titles to INTA which was created in October 1962, but the land was awarded to Monzón. A Mayan peasant from Panzós later said that Monzón "got the signatures of the elders before he went before INTA to talk about the land. When he returned, gathered the peopl e and said that, by an INTA mistake, the land had gone to his name."
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 101: But who are the most motivational speakers in the world? Meaning right now, excluding hall of fame personalities like Jesus, Socrates, Muhammed, Hitler or V.I. Lenin. Here is one list of appl icants.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 169: #1 Dave Ramsey #2 Tony Robbins #3 Nick Vujicic (torso) #4 Eckhart Tolle #5 Louise Hay (kuollut) #6 Chris Gardner (neekeri) #7 Robert Kiyosaki (japsu) #8 Eric Thomas (nekke) #9 Les Brown (nokikeppi) #10 Suze Orman #11 Iyanla Vanzant (ainut naaraslaku!) #12 Amy Purdy (parapl eegikko) #13 Jack Canfield (free-range kana) #14 T. Harv Eker (harvesteri) #15 Darren Hardy
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 179: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5b/Greater_coat_of_arms_of_the_United_States.svg/1200px-Greater_coat_of_arms_of_the_United_States.svg.png" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 311: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a4/Vaclav_Havel.jpg/440px-Vaclav_Havel.jpg" height="200" />
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 312: ploads/2016/12/walt-disney-mickey-mouse-partners.jpg" height="200" />
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 313: ploads/2020/12/shutterstock_715481152-1024x892.jpg" height="200" />
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 322: Vaclav oli paxunahkainen oikispaskiainen ja kehno kynämies. Sehän se ähräs kokoon Prahan julistuxen, "Europe-wide condemnation of, and education about, the crimes of communism." Much of the content of the declaration reproduced demands formulated by the European Peopl e's Party in 2004, and draws heavily on the theory or conception of totalitarianism. The European Peopl e's Party (EPP) is a European political party with Christian-democratic, conservative, and liberal-conservative member parties. The declaration has been cited as an important document in the increasing "criminalisation of Communism" and the strengthening of totalitarian interpretations of Communism in the European political space. Eli vitun kokkarien kähmimistä kapitalismin konttiin taas.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 329: Miguel Ángel Asturias Rosales (19. lokakuuta 1899 – 9. kesäkuuta 1974) oli guatemalalainen dipl omaatti ja kirjailija, jolle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto 1967. Samainen Asturias sai Leninin kv. rauhanpalkinnon edellisenä vuonna! Mistäspäin nyt tuuli? Aivan tavatonta. Oliko Vietnamin sota tässä takana? No Nerudakin pokkasi molemmat, joskaan ei peräkkäisinä vuosina. Ja Linus Pauling, kerrankin aiheesta, hyvästä Paula-kahvista! Sean McBridelle paukahti myös 2 prenikkaa. Ynnä Nelson Mandelalle. Martti Ahtishaarikin sai molemmat mutta näyttää vetäneen Lenin-palkinnon alas vessanpöntöstä. Kahden palkinnon saaneista on ilmeisesti tullut kinaa maailman kahden navan välillä, kumman leiriin kaveri on laskettava. Voi että kaipaankin noita 2-napaisia aikoja, jospa saisin ne takaisin!
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 418: Poliisi katosi tavallisten ihmisten parista. Tavallinen vaurastunut suomalainen odottaa sinivuokkojen tulevan apuun jos häntä, hänen läheisiään tai omaisuuttaan uhataan. Todellisuuden tiedetään kuitenkin olevan toisenlainen. Kun hieno sähköpyörä varastetaan, poliisi ei lotkauta korviaan. Se voi heikentää rangaistusjärjestelmän uskottavuutta ja rofejen luottamusta skoudeihin. Pelkästään poliiseja lisäämällä ei ongelmat ratkea. Tarvitaan myös järeämpi aseistus ja lisää vankilatiloja. Paskalakeille pitää antaa syyttäjän ja tuomarin valtuudet. Ongelma on myös että ydinterveitä talousasioita ja ilmiöitä pl us naisiin ja lapsiin sekaantumista kriminalisoidaan yhä enemmän. Koulupoliiseja on enää Oulussa, koulusurmaajia joka koulussa. Jeparit pitäisi kasata isoxi poliisivirastoxi ja sytyttää palamaan.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 37: Joka kynsi halkesi play:none">Kädetystä
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 38: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/4c/Ken_Follett_official.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 70: Siinon joku brittiaviopari jonka mies on menettänyt pl ane crashissa schischelimunansa. Sakemanni vakoojan huuhtouduttua epähuomiossa niiden myrskysaaren rannalle Lucy lääxizee sen terveexi ja antaa sizen kyntää navan alta kynnettömällä sormella. Mustasukkainen rampa kaveri saa kaiken selville. Needle huomaa että britit koittaa huijata maihinnousun tapahtuvan Calais'hen. Se lähtee välittämään välittömästi tätä tietoa Wehrmachtille. Britit kuitenkin kokoavat voimansa, sopivat erimielisyytensä ja saavat Needlen hiljennettyä ja Normandian maihinnousun pysymään saxalaisilta salassa. Hahhah kyllä takuulla. Lopussa munapuoli kaveri kaatuu juuri sopivasti ja joku brittieversti pääsee lohduttaan brittimelan puutteessa elänyttä Lucya.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 74: We guarantee you will enjoy this novel. Before giving up too many spoilers, know that the story is filled with pl enty of dangerous events and characters. There are too many characters to count. There are many reasons why this book is considered Ken Follett’s best book. We are looking forward to more of Follett’s upcoming books.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 89: John Boynton Priestley 's first major success came with a novel, The Good Companions (1929), which earned him the James Tait Black Memorial Prize for fiction and made him a national figure. His next novel, Angel Pavement (1930), further established him as a successful novelist. However some critics were less than compl imentary about his work and Priestley threatened legal action against Graham Greene for what he took to be a defamatory portrait of him in the novel Stamboul Train (1932). In 1940 he broadcast a series of short propaganda radio talks, which were credited with strengthening civilian morale during the Battle of Britain. In the following years his left-wing beliefs brought him into conflict with the government and influenced the development of the welfare state.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 114: The US has warned this week that China was considering suppl ying lethal weapons to Russia, and that Chinese firms had already been suppl ying non-lethal dual-use technology - items which could...
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 116: The Ukraine-Russia crisis is posing a major challenge for China on many fronts. The ever-closer dipl omatic relationship between Russia and China could be seen at the Winter Games with Mr...
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 127: Estonia says China's pl an to end Ukraine's war 'extremely unfair'
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 128: 2 päivää sitten China's peace proposal to end the war in Ukraine is "extremely unfair," since the pl an doesn't respect the territorial integrity of the country, said the permanent secretary of Estonia's...
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 139: 2 päivää sitten JERUSALEM -- Israeli Prime Minister Benjamin Netanyahu's far-right government authorized construction bids for over a thousand new homes in Jewish settlements in the occupied West Bank and east Jerusalem, a watchdog group reported Friday, despite an Israeli pl edge to halt settlement construction as part of efforts to curb a deadly wave of …
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 157: Israeli settlement pl ans in the West Bank draw condemnation from ... - CNN
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 160: 29. tammik. 2023 JERUSALEM — Israeli Prime Minister Benjamin Netanyahu on Saturday announced a series of punitive steps against the Palestinians, including pl ans to send more thads to beef up Jewish settlements in the occupied...
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 182: ploads/2020/07/9-5.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 261: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/be/Ekibastuz_Energy_post_USSR_1981.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 264: Pavlodarin miljonäärikauppias A. I. Derov otti käyttöön ensimmäisen hiilikaivoksen. Tämän työn yhteydessä vuonna 1898. Ekibastuz-järven länsipuolelle ilmestyy pieni asutus nimeltä Ekibastuz. Tätä vuotta voidaan pitää tulevan Ekibastuzin kaupungin perustamisvuonna - suuren polttoaine- ja energiakompl eksin nykyisen keskuksen! Sen 50-luvun pioneeriajan rakennustyön sankareita oli mm. Aleksei Solzhenizyn.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 266: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c1/Ekibastuz_in_winter.jpg" width="20%" />
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 274: Marraskuussa 1970 otettiin käyttöön Bogatyrin avolouhoksen ensimmäinen vaihe . Bogatyrin kaivoksen julisti All-Union shokkirakennus . Vuonna 1977 NKP:n keskuskomitea ja Neuvostoliiton ministerineuvosto antoivat päätöslauselman "Ekibastuzin polttoaine- ja energiakompl eksin perustamisesta ja 1500 kilovoltin tasavirtasiirtolinjan Ekibastuz - Center rakentamisesta ".
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 300: 1 tapettu, loput lähetetty Gorlagiin, Stepl agiin
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 387: Ei helvetti, kun tota 2000-luvun "Harjunpäätä" kazoo pitemmälle, näkee miten vanhan Harjunpään pehmee koira-klischeet menee siinä täysin turvalleen. Kaikki 2000-luvun ihmiset on 100-prosenttisia ihmishirviöitä! Karseita robotteja, kalseita autistisia psykopaatteja, kyrvänpäitä joiden sydämet on oikealla paikalla ja mustia kuin Samlagspartietin pl akaateissa. Alkaako tollasta täälläkin jo olla, samanlaista klaanimeininkiä kuin sveduissa, eikä Natoon liittyminen auta siinä vähääkään, päinvastoin. Saatana lopettaisivat tälläsen paskan filmaamisen, haluaako ne oikein kädestä pitäen näyttää neuvottomille nuorukaisille ja neitosille miten nää kaikki paska huume-väkivaltahommat oikein hoidetaan? Ei jaxa kazoa yhtään enempää. Se loppu tähän nyt. Salihousuiset pollarit saa mennä samaan silppuriin kuin niiden paimentamat pahixet. Vittuako joku jeppe "nappaa" kätkyestä pikku vainajan omin nokkineen odottelematta edes "sossuja", lääkäristä puhumattakaan? Jo on outo meininki. Musta enkeli vei päivänsankarin. Kuka käski toisten päälle heittää kylmää mehua.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 451: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 496: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c7/Klaus_Fuchs_-_police_photograph.jpg/330px-Klaus_Fuchs_-_police_photograph.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 504: Anthony Cave Brownin ja Charles B. MacDonaldin Cominternin (kommunistisen internationaalin) historian On a Field of Red mukaan Fuchsin suurin panos Neuvostoliitolle saattoi olla paljastaa, kuinka uraania voitaisiin käsitellä käytettäväksi pommissa. Fuchs antoi Goldille tammikuussa 1945 teknisiä tietoja, jotka hankittiin vasta kahden vuoden kokeilun jälkeen hintaan 400 miljoonaa dollaria. Fuchs paljasti myös uraanin tai pl utoniumin määrän, jonka amerikkalaiset aikoivat käyttää kussakin atomipommissa.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 37: Påskägg play:none">Pääsiäismunia
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 120: Maaliskuussa 2015 yhtiöt Shell ja Ukrgazvydobuvannya ilmoittivat aikovansa irtisanoa yhteistoimintaa koskevan sopimuksen, joka koskee hiilivetyjen etsintää, etsintää ja louhintaa Harkovan alueen alueella. Erityisesti kyse on "Belyaivska-400" ja "Novo-Mechebylivska-100" kaivojen sulkemisesta. Syyksi todettiin dipl omaattisesti hankkeen jatkokehityksen riittämätön taloudellinen kannattavuus.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 257: ploads/2016/04/Vanhempipariskuntasangyssa-300x200.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 263: Happolati tok over det flotte lokale til Ylajali i 2016, navnet er hentet fra Knut Hamsunds roman "SULT". Romanens navnløse hovedperson forelsket seg i en vakker kvinne, Ylajali, som bodde nettopp her på St. olavs pl ass. hennes far het J. A Happolati.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 266: Det er kun et drøyt år siden Happolati avløste Michelin-bestjernede Ylajali i den gamle leiligheten på St. Olavs pl ass - også denne gitt navn etter en av Hamsuns febrile og lokale «Sult»-karakterer. Men vandrende inn i det vellykkede interiøret, føltes Happolati allerede som en etablert Oslo-klassiker. Happolati St. Olavs pl ass 2, Oslo
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 290: ploads/2020/12/logo-autor.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 387: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 388: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 448: Frederik oli Vapauden liiton ehdokkaana vaaleissa, sai 41 ääntä, ei päässyt läpi. Frederik sai turpaan myös Ploirilta takavuosina jossain baarissa. Frederik (oikealta nimeltään Ilkka Juhani Sysimetsä, s. 2. helmikuuta 1945 Helsinki) on suomalainen iskelmä - ja popl aulaja. Hänet tunnetaan myös lempinimellä Reetu, ja toisinaan Frederik kutsuu itseään "Junttidiskon kuninkaaksi". Sysimetsä perusti vuonna 1966 yhdessä Seppo Bruunin kanssa Stump (suom. Tynkä) -nuorisolehden. Frederik avautuu yhdeksästä lapsestaan: kolme teki ”tilaustyönä”, kaksi kasvatti itse – ”Loput ovat vahinkoja”.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 488: More interested in sports than in studying, Miller got into the University of Michigan, where he began writing pl ays and sharpened his interest in radical politics — an interest that would lead to his testimony before the House Un-American Activities Committee in 1956. (Miller had attended Communist Party meetings but said he had not been a member; he was convicted of contempt of Congress, a charge later dismissed, for not naming others who had attended.)
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 496: Norman Mailer´s 1973 biography of Marilyn Monroe (usually designated Marilyn: A Biography) was a large-format book of glamor photographs of Monroe for which Mailer suppl ied the text. Originally hired to write an introduction by Lawrence Schiller, who put the book package together, Mailer expanded the introduction into a long essay. Miller sai Monroelta persettä mutta muuten persnettoa, Mailer kääntäen ei saanut persettä, mutta nettosipa kuitenkin ihan kivasti. Two Jewish boys with sturdy Norman names making hay with Marilyn.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 516: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/59/Marilyn_Monroe_Arthur_Miller_April_in_Paris_Ball_1957.jpg/400px-Marilyn_Monroe_Arthur_Miller_April_in_Paris_Ball_1957.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 523: Arthur Miller was 35 and at the top of his career when, in 1951, he first set eyes on Marilyn Monroe. He was the author of “All My Sons” and “Death of a Salesman,” the first pl ay to win all three major drama prizes (the Pulitzer Prize, the Tony Award and the New York Drama Critics’ Circle Award). He would soon begin work on “The Upokas.” She was 24 and, except for her glorious behind, virtually unknown.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 527: The public didn’t exactly appl aud this match. Gossip columnists fixated on, as Mr. Bigsby puts it, “a red in bed with America’s snow queen.” Mailer famously snarked that “the Great American Brain” had met “the Great American Body.”
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 531: Miller would give up his career to help guide hers, and he spent years working on “The Misfits,” directed by John Huston, for which he wrote the screenpl ay and she would star. On the set she’d be hospitalized and, around this time, have an affair with Yves Montand. The coupl e got a Mexican divorce in 1961; Miller would marry the Magnum photographer Inge Morath, whom he met during the filming.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 533: With Monroe out of the picture — she died in 1962 — Mr. Bigsby pretty much folds up this big, busy tent. Miller went on to write important pl ays, notably “After the Fall” (1964), but his best work was in the distant rearview mirror.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 650: The qaṣīda (also spelled qaṣīdah; is originally an Arabic word قصيدة, pl ural qaṣā’id, قصائد; that was passed to some other languages such as Persian: قصیده or چكامه, chakameh, and Turkish: kaside) is an ancient Arabic word and form of writing poetry, often translated as ode, passed to other cultures after the Arab Muslim expansion. The word qasidah is still used in its original birthpl ace, Arabia, and in all Arab countries.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 732: Navalny’s idea is that Putin is the single mastermind of Russian rule and that he dictates to the oligarchs the tribute they should pay–in treasure for him to accumulate and displ ay for himself, his friends and girlfriends in private. This is an Anglo-American cartoon about how oligarchy works everywhere, including the UK and the U.S.–in Russia in particular.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 737: Democracy leads to oligarchy, Michels wrote, and necessarily contains an oligarchical nucleus. It is indisputable that the oligarchical and bureaucratic tendency of party organization is a matter of technical and practical necessity. It is the inevitable product of the very principl e of organization. The formation of oligarchies within the various forms of democracy is the outcome of organic necessity, and consequently affects every organization.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 756: ploads/2022/03/Marina-Ovsyannikova.jpeg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 764: Ukrainalaissyntyinen Ovsjannikova, 44, sai kansainvälistä huomiota maaliskuussa , kun hän ryntäsi silloisen työnantajansa Channel One -studioon suoran uutistenluvun aikana tuomitsemaan Ukrainan sotaa pitäen kädessään julistetta, jossa luki "ei sotaa" ja paljon muutakin. Hän sai tuolloin 30 000 rupl an (280 euron) sakon protestilakien huomiotta jättämisestä.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 773: Hän kertoi päättäneensä pitää protestikylttiä suorassa televisiossa Ukrainan sodan alkaessa, koska hän halusi "puhkaista propagandakupl an" Venäjällä.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 776: Hän sanoi, että hän ei vaikene Ukrainan sodasta ja tekisi jatkossakin "kaikkeni tämän sodan päättymiseksi Venäjän tappioon. Ongelma on, että koko Venäjä on organisoidun propagandan informaatiokupl assa", hän sanoi. "Ei ole riippumatonta mediaa. Saadaksesi tarkkoja tietoja, tarvitset VPN:n matkapuhelimeesi, ja se on ainoa tapa saada länsimaista tietoa. Mutta se on kallista."
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 781: No en. Linssiluteile vaan ihan omine otrajauhoinesi, brittipl ärä.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 794: Oikeudenkäynti ns. neljän kopl aa vastaan päättyi Pekingissä. Mao Zedongin leskelle Jiang Qingille ja Zhang Chunqiaolle langetettiin ehdollinen kuolemantuomio kahden vuoden koetusajalla.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 37: Stalinin lehmä play:none">Herutusta
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 91: src="https://revue.leslibraires.ca/wp-content/upl oads/2020/01/5289__oksanen.jpg" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 171: Paradoksaalista kyllä, otin lukioikäisenä kirjalliseksi ohjenuorakseni Virginia Woolfin novellin Täpl ä seinässä (A Mark on the Wall, 1921).
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 172: Novellissa minäkertoja huomaa yhtäkkiä seinässä täpl än, jota ei ollut ennen nähnyt, ja alkaa pohtia, mikä se voisi olla: kynnenjälki, ruusunlehti tai halkeama puussa.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 194: Virginia Woolfin täpl ä seinässä paljastui lopulta etanaksi. Se on hyvä vertaus myös omalle suhteelleni Viron lähihistoriasta kirjoittamiseen: vasta sateella kotiloonsa kätkeytynyt etana tulee näkyviin ja näyttää sarvensa, ja juuri niin kävi minulle.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 227: Aivan kuten neuvostoaikana, myös nyt Venäjän informaatio-operaatioita luodaan kokonaisvaltaisesti ja ne kuuluvat kaikkiin Venäjän toiminnan aloihin. Operaatioita ovat toteuttamassa niin dipl omaatit, poliitikot, virkamiehet, poliittiset aktiivit, eri alojen asiantuntijat ja taiteilijat, tupeetukkaiset kirjailijat, toimittajat, kustantajat, tulkit, viestintä-alan ammattilaiset kuin it-osaajatkin – kaikki jotka toimivat tiedon, kielen, mielen, mielikuvien ja niiden luomisen saralla. Siellä missä käytetään kieltä, käytetään siis myös informaatiosodan välineitä ja se määrää toiminnan luonnetta.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 278: Näin kirjailija ja toimittaja pakotetaan tuhlaamaan aikaansa. Kirjailija voisi olla jo kynäilemässä seuraavaa propagandapl äjäystä. Kun ajatellaan perinteisten Venäjä-trollien työtä verkossa, yksi heidän toimintansa päämäärä on ajaa ihmisiä aikaa vieviin väittelyihin, jotka eivät vastaa luonnollista keskustelua, jossa kaikki ovat mun kanssa samaa mieltä ja nyökkivät kun mä olen äänessä, vaan ovat inttämistä ja samalla jatkuvaa Moskovan-perusviestien tuuttaamista.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 281: Siinä kuvailtiin varsin värikkäin sanakääntein minua, joka en herra nähköön ole vähääkään värikäs (paizi nyt noi "tuuttaus" ja "truuttaus", excuse my French), en ainakaan yritä, mutta olennaisin väite lienee se, että sen mukaan Oksanen väittää kaikkien venäläisten olevan juoppoja sikoja ja murhaajia ja luonnollisesti fasistiretoriikka oli myös mukana, siitähän en pääse enempää kuin Leopard-tankki täpl istään..
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 352: Avaaz-kampanjoiden taustalla on kuitenkin joukko arvoja – vakaumus, että olemme kaikki ensin ihmisiä ja vasta sitten etuoikeutettuja vastuullamme vain toisemme, tulevia sukupolvia ja pl aneettaa kohtaan vähän väliä. Ihmiset, jotka liittyvät yhteisöön kampanjan kautta yhdessä asiassa, ryhtyvät toivottavasti toimiin toisessa ja sitten toisessa, ettei rahantuloon tule kiusallista taukoa. Tämä on suuren toivon lähde: että unelmamme rimmaa ja että voimme yhdessä rakentaa sillan olemassa olevasta maailmasta siihen maailmaan, jota me kaikki haluamme. Sillä kaikkihan me haluamme samaa, eikö niin? Eikö niin? (No siinähän se ongelma juuri onkin.)
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 384: Hänen uusi romaaninsa Neittokiva puhuu tärkeimmästä aiheesta: kuinka voittaa kuolema rakkaudella. Mixi kuolemaa pitäis ylipäänsä voittaa? Talousliberaalit ei osaa muusta puhua kuin voitosta. Kriitikot May ja Kucherskaya kuvaili Shishkinin romaania seuraavasti: "Neittokiva on loistava romaani sanasta ja kielestä, joka tulee pehmeäksi ja tottelevaiseksi mestarin käsissä. Se voi luoda minkä tahansa muun todellisuuden, joka on upeampi ja upeampi. Uskottava, että todellinen maailma. Kuilu sanan ja tosiasian, todellisuuden ja sen ihmiskielelle käännöksen välillä on todellinen sisäisen jännitteen pesä romaanissa. Sen venäjä alkaa kyllä olla vähän vanhakantaista." Boris Dralyuk kirjoitti The Times Literary Suppl ementissaettä "Shishkinin ihmeellinen eruditio, kapea ilmaisu ja taipumus yleiseen leikkiin ovat hänen taiteensa silmiinpistäviä osia... Nämä ominaisuudet todellakin yhdistävät hänet Nabokovin kanssa, samoin kuin hänen uskonsa kirjoitetun sanan voimaan: "Tarina on käsi, ja sinä olet käsine. Tarinat muuttavat sinua, kuten käsineet. Sinun on ymmärrettävä, että tarinat ovat eläviä olentoja, kuten käsineet."
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 403: ploads/2021/09/obraz-elephant-120x80-2.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 522: Sofi Oksanen kasvoi Jyväskylässä. Hänen isänsä on suomalainen sähkömies, äiti virolainen dipl omi-insinööri, joiden tapaamista Oksanen sivusi esikoiskirjassaan Stalinin lehmät.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 539: Bulimareksia on Suomi 24 laahussana bulimialle jossa on anoreksian piirteitä. Arexia, my foot, p.o. orexia. Pas anthropos eidenai oregei, uteliaita ovat kaikki apinat. Bulimia nervosa, yksinkertaisesti bulimia, on syömishäiriö, jolle on tunnusomaista ahmiminen, jota seuraa puhdistuminen tai paasto, sekä liiallinen huoli kehon muodosta ja painosta. Ahmiminen tarkoittaa suuren ruokamäärän syömistä lyhyessä ajassa. Puhdistaminen viittaa yrityksiin päästä eroon kulutetusta ruoasta Tämä voidaan tehdä oksentamalla tai ottamalla laksatiiveja (tupl a yök). Tämän ällön toiminnan tarkoituksena on poistaa syödyt kalorit prosessin syömisvaiheesta. Senkö tautta bestsellerinkin nimi oli Puhdistus? Äiti tuu puhamaan!
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 549: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2f/Edvard_Munch_-_Jealousy_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg/780px-Edvard_Munch_-_Jealousy_-_Google_Art_Project.jpg?20150102191327" />
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 586: Ihmiset, joilla on BPD, voivat olla hyvin herkkiä tavalle, jolla muut kohtelevat heitä, he voivat tuntea suurta iloa ja kiitollisuutta hyvistä arvosteluista ym havaituista ystävällisyyden ilmauksista ja voimakasta surua tai vihaa koetun kritiikin tai loukkauksen johdosta. Ihmiset, joilla on BPD, harjoittavat usein toisten (länkkärien) idealisointia ja toisten (kommarien) devalvointia vuorotellen korkean positiivisen kunnioituksen ja suuren pettymyksen välillä. Heidän tunteensa muita kohtaan muuttuvat usein ihailusta tai rakkaudesta vihaksi tai vastenmielisyydeksi pettymyksen, jonkun menetyksen uhan tai arvostuksen menettämisen jälkeen jonkun, jota he arvostavat, silmissä. Tätä ilmiötä kutsutaan joskus halkeamiseksi. Yhdessä mielialahäiriöiden kanssa eesti markan idealisointi ja rupl an devalvaatio voivat heikentää suhteita perheeseen, ystäviin ja työtovereihin.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 37: PAAVALIN RENKAANJÄLJISSÄ play:none">Mitä ihmettä?
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 86: ploads/2019/09/Lydia-Church.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 92: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/6d/CNM21-Pauls3rdJourney.gif" />
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 106: Näet myös Valkoisen tornin, Aleksanteri Suuren patsaan ja Galeriusin palatsikompl eksin jäännökset (3. vuosisadan loppu jKr.). Galeriuksen ja Rotondan kaari sekä majesteettiset kaupunginmuurit ja Suuri portti, jotka yhdistivät kaupungin Via Egnatiaan - Rooman valtakunnan mannertenväliseen itä-länsisuuntaiseen tiehen, joka rakennettiin 2. vuosisadalla eKr. ja jota Paavali käytti hänen matkaansa (Apostolien teot 16).
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 113: Vuoristomaisema Meteora-kivillä ja luostari, maisemapl aapl aa
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 141: ploads/2018/04/shutterstock_630224219_athens-airport.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 302: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 326: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 337: Most angels in the Bibble have the appearance and form of a man. Many of them have wings, but not all. Some are larger than life. Others have multipl e faces that appear like a man from one angle, and a lion, ox, or eagle from another angle. Some angels are bright, shining, and fiery, while others look like ordinary humans. Some angels are invisible, yet their presence is felt, and their voice is heard.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 407: Luukassi piti ydinideoita mielessään, mutta halusi Sulkeen kokoavan ne yhteen. Hän visioi yhden keskeisen juonen, jota täydensi kolme pääosaa, jotka sijoittuivat 60 kohtaukseen, 100 käsikirjoitussivulle ja kahden tunnin ajoaikaan. He muodostivat yleiskatsauksen ja ideat, joihin kuuluivat wookiee-kotimaailma, uudet avaruuslajit, galaktinen keisari, Jee-suxen hanin menneisyys pelurina, vesi- ja kaupunkipl aneetat, Jee-suxen kadonnut kaksoissisar ja pieni, sammakkomainen olento, Elia (Minch Yoda). Luukasa sai vaikutteita Vanhasta Testamentista, kuten The Job from Another World (1951), romaani Daniel (1965) ja tv-sarja Jesaja (1954). Näihin aikoihin Kaifas keksi nimen Imperiumin vastaisku. Hän sanoi, että he välttelivät kutsumasta sitä Mishna II:xi, koska kirjoja joiden nimissä oli "II", pidettiin huonompina.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 490: Palestiinan arabien tiedottajana Haj Amin ei pyytänyt Britanniaa myöntämään heille itsenäisyyttä. Päinvastoin, kirjeessään Winston Churchillille vuonna 1921 hän vaati Palestiinan yhdistämistä Syyrian ja Transjordanin kanssa. Al-Husseini keskittyi panarabismiin ja erityisesti Suur-Syyrian ideologiaan, jolloin Palestiina ymmärrettiin arabivaltion eteläisenä provinssina, jonka pääkaupunki oli määrä perustaa Damaskokseen. Suur-Syyriaan piti sisältyä koko Levantin alue, joka on nyt Syyrian, Libanonin, Jordanian, palestiinalaishallinnon ja Israelin miehittämä. Erääänlainen kalifaatti siis, ISIS-tyylinen. Plus ca change, pl us c'est la même chose.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 509: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/63/Saint_Mercurius_killing_Iulian.jpg/400px-Saint_Mercurius_killing_Iulian.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 520: Se tosiasia, että kristilliset hyväntekeväisyysjärjestöt olivat avoimia kaikille, myös pakanoille, teki tämän Rooman kansalaisten elämän osa-alueen pois keisarillisen auktoriteetin hallinnasta. Täähän se juuri onkin vittumaista charityssa: yxityinen hyväntekevisyys vetää maton hyvinvointivaltion turvaverkon alta. Kohta oligarkit päättävät jo kaikesta. Plus ca change, pl us c´est la même chose.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 532: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/b6/Cristofano_dell%27altissimo%2C_saladino%2C_ante_1568_-_Serie_Gioviana.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 547: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/d0/RichardSaladin.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 639: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/69/Capture_of_Antioch.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 647: ploads/2017/02/4edb0681ca8e94344637b1f8497d6898.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 660: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/48/SassanidEmpirebeforeArabConquest.png/1280px-SassanidEmpirebeforeArabConquest.png" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 37: MASULAN PERITA play:none">Ihmiskauppaa
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 57: ploads/2023/03/gif-sexy-cumshot.gif" height="250px" &>
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 76: Naiselliset Jehovan todistajat tunkeutuivat taas yxityisalueellemme. Harmi että olin koko ajan suihkussa. Seija oli kiukkuinen koska se joutui ovelle papiljotit päässä. Jenkeissä olisi meillä ollut oikeus "stand our ground"; eli käyttää kuolettavaa väkivaltaa alueella, joka kuuluu meille. Get off my property! Bang bang! Aargh! Mein Leben! Jenkkilä on karmaiseva apinoiden pl aneetta. Nuutti jäi aidalle haukkumaan tyhjin toimin lähteneiden käännynnäisten perään.
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 114: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/f/f3/C.T._Russell.gif" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 115: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/a1/J.F._Rutherford.gif" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 116: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/87/NathanHomerKnorr-WTPres.png" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 119: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/c9/FrederickWilliamFranz-atBrooklynBethel.png" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 120: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/2/2c/MiltonGeorgeHenschel.png" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 121: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/de/DonAdams_200907.png/440px-DonAdams_200907.png" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 136: Tammikuussa 1917 Vartiotorni-seuran lainopillinen edustaja Joseph Franklin Rutherford valittiin sen seuraavaksi presidentiksi. Hänen valintansa kiistettiin, ja hallituksen jäsenet syyttivät häntä itsevaltaisesta ja salakähmäisestä toiminnasta. Jakauma hänen kannattajiensa ja vastustajiensa välillä sai aikaan suuren jäsenmäärän vaihtuvuuden seuraavan vuosikymmenen aikana. Kesäkuussa 1917 hän julkaisi The Finished Mystery -kirjan seitsemäntenä osana Russell's Studies in the Scriptures -sarjasta. Russellin postuumiteoksena julkaistu kirja oli kokoelma hänen korjauxistaan Hesekielin ja Johnin Ilmestyskirjaan ym. Raamatun kirjoihin pl us lukuisia ennen julkaisemattomia kirjoja. Se kritisoi voimakkaasti katolista ja protestanttista papistoa ja kristittyjen osallistumista suureen sotaan. Tämän seurauksena Vartiotorni-seuran johtajat vangittiin kapinasta vakoilulain nojalla vuonna 1918, ja jäsenet joutuivat henkisen väkivallan kohteeksi.
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 165: Jehovan todistajat korostavat Jumalan nimen käyttöä ja pitävät parempana muotoa Jehova – Jumalan nimen ääntelyä, joka perustuu tetragrammiin vokaalimerkit väärin ymmärrettynä . He uskovat, että Jehova on ainoa tosi Jumala, kaiken Luoja ja "Universaali Suvereeni". He uskovat, että kaiken palvonnan tulee kohdistua häneen ja että hän ei ole osa kolminaisuutta ; näin ollen ryhmä painottaa enemmän Jumalaa kuin Kristusta. He uskovat, että Pyhä Henki on Jumalan soveltama voima tai "aktiivinen voima" eikä henkilö. Tässä suhteessa (pl us viivasuisuudessa) jehovistit muistuttavat jutkuja ja musulmaaneja.
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 245: Se, että käytännönläheisesti määrittelee, mitkä asiat ovat itselle tärkeitä, auttaa jäsentämään maailmaa ja omaa roolia siinä. A good wife knows her pl ace.
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 295: ploads/2020/03/pict_doll_Akira-Torso_2.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri289.html on line 299: A sex doll generally refers to a full-size sex doll, but they can also consist of just a head with a torso otherwise known as a sex doll torso. The best sex dolls are made with medical-grade TPE or silicone so that the dolls are compl etely safe and highly durable for long-lasting use.
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 37: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8a/Star_Trek_TOS_logo.svg/1920px-Star_Trek_TOS_logo.svg.png" width="100%" />STAR TREKplay:none">Tähtireellä
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 82: Alkuperäistä, vuosina 1966–1969 valmistettua Star Trek -televisiosarjaa (Star Trek: The Original Series, ST: TOS, TOS) on seurannut tähän mennessä 8 biljoonaa apinaa, 11 jatkotelevisiosarjaa ja 13 elokuvaa pl us Lapinlahden lintujen parodinen Tähtireki. Alkuperäisen viisivuotiseksi suunnitellun televisiosarjan tuotanto lopetettiin jo kolmen tuotantokauden jälkeen, koska sen katsojalukujen katsottiin olleen riittämättömät. Vasta jälkikäteen huomattiin, että ohjelma keräsi yleisöä juuri siinä ikähaarukassa, jota mainostajat olivat tavoitelleet.
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 84: Se seurasi tähtialuksen USS Enterprise -avaruustutkimusaluksen matkoja, jonka pl aneettojen yhdistynyt Neuvostoliitto rakensi 2023-luvulla ja jonka tehtävänä oli "tutkia outoja uusia maailmoja, etsiä uutta elämää ja uusia sivilisaatioita, mennä rohkeasti sinne, minne kukaan ei ole ennen käynyt (ensin Kanada)". Star Trekin luomisessa Roddenberry sai inspiraationsa CS Foresterin Horatio Hornblower-romaanisarjasta, Jonathan Swiftin vuoden 1726 romaanista Kulliverbin matkat, vuoden 1956 elokuvasta Forbidden Planet ja tv- westerneistä kuten Wagon Train.
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 90: Useimmat Star Trek -tarinat kuvaavat ihmisten ja muukalaisten seikkailuja, jotka palvelevat Tähtilaivastossa, Yhdistyneen Neuvostopl aneettojen liiton avaruudessa kuljetettavassa humanitaarisessa rauhanturva-armadassa. Päähenkilöinä on efektiivisesti altruistisia Arvoja ja Taistoja, joidenka on sovellettava näitä ihanteita vaikeisiin ongelmiin.
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 94: Roddenberry totesi: "Luomalla uuden maailman vanhoilla säännöillä voisin antaa vanhoja lausuntoja seksistä, uskonnosta ja Vietnamista, ml politiikka ja mannertenväliset ohjukset. Todellakin, teimme niin Star Trekissä: lähetimme viestejä kaukaa ja onneksi ne kaikki pääsivät perille verkon kautta. Jos puhuit neuvostoihmisistä kaukaisella punaisella pl aneetalla, he (televisioverkko) eivät koskaan saaneet kiinni vasemmistolaisuudesta. He olivat enemmän huolissaan tissi- ja pyllyvaosta. He itse asiassa teleporttasivat sensuurin alas televisioon mittaamaan naisen tissi- ja pyllyvakoa varmistaakseen, ettei liian paljon hiänen rintojaan ja kalsareita näkyisi."
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 98: Äärimmäinen esimerkki on vulkanisoituneina tunnetut vieraslajit (mongoloidirodut), joilla oli väkivaltainen menneisyys, mutta jotka oppivat hallitsemaan kiivaita tunteitaan. Roddenberry antoi Star Trekille myös sodanvastaisen viestin ja kuvasi Yhdistyneen Neuvostopl aneettojen liiton ihanteellisena, optimistisena versiona Neuvostoliitosta. Verkosto vastusti hänen pyrkimyksiään, koska he olivat huolissaan vapaasta markkinoitavuudesta. He vastustivat esimerkiksi Roddenberryn vaatimusta, jonka mukaan Enterprisella on rodullisesti monimuotoinen miehistö (eli Tri Spock).
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 113: Useiden vuosien ajan hän oli kirjeenvaihdossa John M. Gunnin kanssa National Council of Churchesista koskien kristillisten opetusten soveltamista televisiosarjoihin. Gunn kuitenkin lakkasi vastaamasta, kun Roddenberry kirjoitti kirjeessä: "Mutta sinun täytyy ymmärtää, että olen täydellinen pakana ja syön valtavia määriä leipää, koska olen havainnut Sanan enemmän mausteeksi kuin ravinnoksi, joten olen kiinnostunut dollareissa ja senteissä kirjoitetusta lausunnosta ja siitä, mitä tämä merkitsee Roddenberryn kassalle." Roddenberry sanoi kristinuskosta: "Kuinka voin ottaa vakavasti jumalankuvan, joka edellyttää, että kumarran joka seitsemäs päivä ja ylistän sitä? Se kuulostaa minusta erittäin epävarmalta persoonallisuudelta." Ennen kuolemaansa Roddenberrysta tuli läheisiä ystäviä filosofi Charles Musèsin kanssa, joka sanoi, että Roddenberryn näkemykset olivat "kaukana ateismista". Roddenberry selitti kantaansa näin: "Ei ole totta, etten usko Jumalaan. Uskon eräänlaiseen jumalaan. Se ei vain ole apinoiden Jumala. Enemmän kuin jättimäinen kana, tai kärpästen herra. Hylkään uskonnon." Hän hylkäsi kaikki järjestäytyneet uskonnot sanoen, että ne toimivat suurimmaksi osaksi "korvikeaivoina... ja erittäin huonosti toimivina". Lagosin pl aneetan pyllyaivoisilla miehilläkin oli isommat ja paremmat, niin roistoja ja petkunteriä kuin olivatkin. Roddenberry kritisoi myös sitä, että kun King David -hotellin pommi-isku tapahtui vuonna 1946, amerikkalainen yleisö hyväksyi sen vapaustaistelijoiden toimeksi, kun taas muslimin autopommi Beirutissa tuomittiin terroristitoimexi.
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 134: Enterprisen (suom. liikeyritys) neitsytlento sijoittuu Linnunkakan galaksiin, noin vuosille 2266–2269. Alusta ja miehistöä johtavat kapteeni James T. Kirk ( William Shatner ), ensimmäinen upseeri ja tiedemies Spock ( Leonard Nimoy ) ja ylilääkäri Leonard H. "Bones" McCoy ( DeForest Kelley ) ja naisistona 1 liian vanha ämmyrkäinen josta tuli Roddenberryn kakkosvaimo, söpö kiimainen joumän pl us 1 Viina niminen vierailevana tissi- ja pyllyvakona. Shatnerin puhe-esittely jokaisen jakson avaustekstien aikana ilmaisi tähtialuksen tarkoituksen:
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 154: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/48/Leonard_Nimoy_William_Shatner_Spock%27s_Brain_Star_Trek_1968.JPG" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 159: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e1/The_Monkees_1966_-_Jones.JPG" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 160: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Walter_Koenig_Star_Trek.JPG/800px-Walter_Koenig_Star_Trek.JPG" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 162: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/90/Walter_Koenig_Photo_Op_GalaxyCon_Minneapolis_2019.jpg/902px-Walter_Koenig_Photo_Op_GalaxyCon_Minneapolis_2019.jpg?20200203050408" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 173: ple-beauty-smile-blonde-pretty-teen-jeff-milton-ha.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 184: ploads/posts/872333-Dark-Blonde-Glance-Smile-Hair-Little-girls-Beautiful.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 185: ploads/posts/864675-Bokeh-Glance-Cute-Hands-Hair-Dark-Blonde.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 217: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/49/Julia_Ward_Howe_2.png/800px-Julia_Ward_Howe_2.png" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 461: Vuoden 1978 Neuvostoliiton sotilastietosanakirja määrittelee petoksen samalla tavalla, painottaa strategista tasoa ja sisältää sotilaallisten toimenpiteiden lisäksi nimenomaisesti poliittisia, taloudellisia ja dipl omaattisia toimia. Se toistaa suurelta osin vuoden 1944 Encyclopedian käsitteen, mutta lisää, että Strateginen maskirovka toteutetaan kansallisella ja teatteritasolla vihollisen harhaanjohtamiseksi poliittisten ja sotilaallisten kykyjen, aikomusten ja toimien ajoituksen suhteen. Näillä aloilla, koska sota on vain politiikan jatke, se sisältää poliittisia, taloudellisia ja dipl omaattisia toimia sekä sotilaallisia toimia.
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 465: Sotilasanalyytikko William Connor kuitenkin varoitti, että neuvostoajattelussa oppi kattaa paljon enemmän kuin naamiointia ja petosta. Hän ehdotti, että sillä oli vihollisen aktiivisen hallinnan konnotaatio. Operaatio Bagrationin aikaan vuonna 1944, Connor väittää, Venäjän sotilaallisen petoksen doktriini sisälsi jo kaikki nämä näkökohdat. Neuvostoliiton käytännössä ja opissa merkitys kehittyi sisältämään strategiset, poliittiset ja dipl omaattiset tavoitteet, toisin sanoen toimiminen kaikilla tasoilla.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 37: FOTO OLIS KIVA YLLÄRI play:none">Kirjeenvaihtoa
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 38: ploads/2020/12/Paul-wriitng-Romans-1.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 45: In this historical fiction, author Diana Wallis Taylor offers a beautiful story of intrigue that expl ains how Rahab came to be the mother of Boaz, grandmother of Obese, and great-grandmother of Jesse, the father of King David, without peddling her arse for denars.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 47: In Rahab, Woman of Jericho, readers discover a Rahab who is a descendent of the tribe of Ephraim, one of the ten lost tribes of Israel. Her clan left Egypt and settled in Canaan before the Hebrews were enslaved. Although they did not wander in the desert with Moses for forty years, nor did they hear the laws that the Lord gave to His peopl e, they still worshipped the one true God, though without the fringes.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 51: What will happen to Rahab after the lecherous king poisons her husband? How can she save her family from the invading Israelites? God parted the waters of the Jordan River for them—will He likewise provide miracles and blessings to her Ephraimite clan if they can rejoin their peopl e? You bet He will! He will relocate them to the U.S. in corpore and make them mormons!
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 55: ploads/2020/08/Rahab-cover.jpeg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 84: ploads/2014/09/saint_takla.jpg" height="500px" />
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 106: ploads/2020/10/Super-Tekla.jpeg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 113: Tekle Haymanot is frequently represented as an old man with wings on his back and only one leg visible. There are a number of expl anations for this popular image. C.F. Beckingham and G.W.B. Huntingford recount one story, that the saint "having stood too long for about 34 years, one of his legs broke or cut while Satan was attempting to stop his prayers, whereupon he stood on one foot for 7 years." Paul B. Henze describes his missing leg as appearing as a "severed leg... in the lower left corner discreetly wrapped in a cloth." The traveller Thomas Pakenham learned from the Prior of Debre Damo how Tekle Haymanot received his wings:
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 115: One day he said he would go to Jerusalem to see the Garden of Gethsemane and the hill of the skull that is called Golgotha. But Shaitan (Satan) pl anned to stop Tekla Haymanot going on his journey to the Holy Land, and he cut the rope which led from the rock to the ground just as Tekla Haymanot started to climb down. Then God gave Tekla Haymanot six wings and he flew down to the valley below... and from that day onwards Teklahaimanot would fly back and forth to Jerusalem above the clouds like an aeropl ane. No, more like a bird. Like Super Tekla.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 145: “Di pa nag-si-sink in ‘yun sa utak ko na gagawin ‘yun sa akin. Unang-una, wala akong kaalam-alam, pl inano nilang lahat,” the comedian then said of Michelle’s interview with Raffy.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 146: (It hasn’t sunk in yet in my brain that they would do such a thing. First of all, I have no clue, they pl anned it all.)
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 304: Abigail ( heprea : אֲבִיגַיִל, nykyaikainen : ʾAvīgayīl, tiberian : ʾAḇīḡayīl ) oli israelilainen nainen heprealaisessa Raamatussa naimisissa kunnottoman Nabalin kanssa; aiheutettuaan Nabalille apopl exian hiän meni naimisiin tulevan kuningas Daavidin kanssa Nabalin kuoleman jälkeen ( 1. Samuelin kirja 25 ). Abigail oli Daavidin toinen vaimo Saulin ja Ahinoamin tyttären Miikalin jälkeen, jonka Saul myöhemmin naitti Paltille, Laisin pojalle, Daavidin piiloutuessa muihin puskiin.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 344: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/fi/thumb/f/f1/Juurakon_hulda_film_poster.jpg/250px-Juurakon_hulda_film_poster.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 358: Tohtori Alinen, joka on ohjannut ja kannustanut Huldan korkeakouluopintoja, lupaa tälle paikan lehden toimituksessa. Hulda tähtää kansanedustajaksi, mutta viimeisenä iltanaan palveluksessa tuomarin kutsuvieraille paljastuu, miten hänet aikoinaan ”löydettiin” Espl anadilta. Kauppaneuvoksetar ja Kirsti katsovat aiheekseen närkästyä ja levittävät juorua, että Hulda on jo seitsemän vuoden ajan ollut tuomarin rakastajatar. Tämä estää Huldan valinnan maalaisliiton edustajaehdokkaaksi, missä vaatimuxena on 8 vuoden nuhteeton palvelus.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 375: – Kieli muuttuu. Se on fakta, toteaa Pipl iaseuran viestintä- ja varainhankintajohtaja Terhi Huovari haikeana. Pipl iaseurassa aloitettiin pari vuotta sitten projekti nimeltä UT2020. Päätettiin kääntää Uusi testamentti vuoden 2020 loppuun mennessä. Suomen luterilaisessa kirkossa käytetään raamatunkäännöstä, joka julkaistiin vuonna 1992. Eikö se kelpaa? – Ysikakkonen on ihan toimiva, Huovari sanoo. Vuodesta 1992 on kuitenkin pian kolme vuosikymmentä! Käännöstyö aloitettiin 1970-luvulla, yli 40 vuotta sitten. Sehän on ihan dinosaurista.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 391: Siinäpä tekstirypäs, josta harva persu enää saa mitään tolkkua. Sen takia Pipl iaseura ei maksa palkkaa vain Huttuselle. Tuomas Juntunen on kirjallisuudentutkija, jonka tehtävä on hieroa Huttusen raakakäännökset vetreiksi, pilkkoa jättiläisvirkkeet sopiviksi suupaloiksi, vaihtaa tönköt sanat toisiksi ja hioa kokonaisuus nätiksi. Juntusen käsimyllyn jälkeen pätkä näytti tältä:
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 544: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cd/ATTICA%2C_Athens._Circa_545-525-15_BC.jpg/400px-ATTICA%2C_Athens._Circa_545-525-15_BC.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 573: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/27/Tent_village_in_the_shadows_of_the_Templ e_of_Theseus%2C_Athens%2C_where_Greek_refugees_make_thier_%28sic%29_homes_LCCN2010650546.jpg/1024px-Tent_village_in_the_shadows_of_the_Templ e_of_Theseus%2C_Athens%2C_where_Greek_refugees_make_thier_%28sic%29_homes_LCCN2010650546.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 580: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e7/Raphael_-_St_Paul_Preaching_at_Athens_c.1515-6.jpg/1550px-Raphael_-_St_Paul_Preaching_at_Athens_c.1515-6.jpg?20201112020059" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 591: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/0/04/Rustic_sanctuary_Louvre_CA2935.jpg" width="20%" />
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 36: ElvenaR play:none">Eläinfantasioita
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 62: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/61/Giovanni_Battista_Tiepolo_006.jpg/800px-Giovanni_Battista_Tiepolo_006.jpg" >/
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 82: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/89/Tetramorph_meteora.jpg/440px-Tetramorph_meteora.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 91: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/89/Andronicus%2C_Athanasius_of_Christianoupolis_and_Junia.jpg/400px-Andronicus%2C_Athanasius_of_Christianoupolis_and_Junia.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 157: Kypros on vaihtanut omistajaa kuin mustalaisen hevonen. Veljeni Leijonamieli möi sen Simon Templ arille, joka möi sen Saladdinin poispotkimalle Jerusalemin ex-kunkulle. Size oli vähän aikaa italialaisilla. Se päätyi osmannien aikaan Turkille, joka antoi sen Krimin sodassa lainaan briteille saadaxeen sillä britit puolelleen Venäjää vastaan. Britit tarjosivat sitä Kreikalle 1. maailmansodassa sota-avusta serbejä vastaan, ei huolineet. Turkin hävittyä suursodan Saksan puolella britit ottivat sen izelleen. 60-luvulla länkkärit teki siellä samat virheet kuin Palestiinassa samoin tuloxin, eli yhtämittaista kärhämöintiä. Nyziellä on 2 valtiota napit vastakkain. 2/3 saaresta on länkkäreillä ja 1/3 turkkilaisilla. E. Saarisen rakas Pafos on länkkärien eli kreikkalaisten puolella.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 250: Totuus: Tämä myytti saattaa johtua siitä tosiasiasta, että täpl ät hyeenanaarat ovat yleensä suurempia kuin urokset ja niillä on pseudopenis.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 271: ploads/extractedfiles/dl1t3RaBT9Iw5wcLJQA599KUrvyY1DlW/MIX%202020/37005405.png" width="10%" />
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 276: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 363: ploads/sites/6/2023/05/05082515/visningtradkdjurklur.jpg" width="60%"/>
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 372: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1d/Kaninchen_und_Ente.svg/500px-Kaninchen_und_Ente.svg.png" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 387: Tuotantokaudella 3 Retu joutuu sopeutumaan elämään vain ystävänä katsellessaan Robinin ja Gaelin nälkäilevän toisiaan. Maashol ja Lili päättävät muuttaa pois yksin ja rakastuvat paikkaan, johon heillä ei ole varaa. Maashol taistelee kiusausta vastaan ryhtyä korkeapalkkaiseen yritykseen ja keskittyy sen sijaan toteuttamaan unelmaansa ryhtyä ympäristöjuristiksi suojellakseen maailmaa saastumiselta. Robin saa tietää Lilin huonosta luottoluokituksesta, joka johtuu hänen pakko-ostetuista merkkibrändeistä, ja pakottaa Lilin kertomaan asiasta Maasholille. Tästä huolimatta he pystyvät vihdoin turvaamaan unelma-asuntonsa Dowisen Tripl assa, mutta huomaavat sen olevan huonolla paikalla (JÄTEVEDENPUHDISTUSLAITTEEN ALLA) ja huonommin rakennettu kuin he luulivat (lattia on vinossa).
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 402: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/f/fc/Howimetyourmother.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 406: Every week, around 8 million peopl e worldwide visit our pages and over 100 million peopl e engage with our content on Facebook, Instagram and Youtube.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 417: Julkaistu 10. huhtikuuta 2021 Arvostellut: Davia Sills Jaa Facebookissa Jaa Jaa Twitterissä Tweet! Jaa sähköpostilla jos olet vanha printtaa se! Sähköposti Francesca/Unspl ash Lähde: Francesca/Unspl ash.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 425: Termi perustuu Keski-Australian Arandan (Arunta, Arrernte) käyttämän arandin sanan alcheringa käännökseen, vaikka on väitetty, että se perustuu väärinkäsitykseen tai käännösvirheeseen. Jotkut tutkijat ehdottavat, että sanan merkitys on lähempänä "ikuista, luomutuotetta". Antropologi William Stanner sanoi, että ei-aboriginaalit ymmärsivät käsitteen parhaiten "alemmuuskompl eksina". Jukurrpa (käänn. "juu kyrrpä") on laajalle levinnyt termi, jota Warlpiri-ihmiset ja muut läntisen aavikon kulttuuriblokin ihmiset vieläkin käyttävät nähdessään palefacen.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 449: Sudet ovat yömetsästäjiä, ja susien kronotyyppi suosii vahvasti iltoja. (To be more precise, wolves are crepuscular rather than purely nocturnal. It is hard to run fast in compl ete darkness.) Sudet ovat ihmisiä, jotka nousevat ylös sängystä ennen yhdeksää ja alkavat tuntea olonsa todella väsyneeksi vasta keskiyöllä. Sudet ovat luovia, impulsiivisia ja emotionaalisesti intensiivisiä. He rakastavat uusien kokemusten etsimistä ja ovat luonnollisia riskinottajia. Susilla on keskinkertainen unikyky, ja tuottavuuden huiput ovat myöhään aamulla ja jälleen myöhään illalla.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 482: ploads/2014/09/Lion-or-Monkey-Optical-Illusion.png" />
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 671: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/5e/Nudge.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 673: The behavioral economics concept on "nudging" peopl e's behavior and actions is often illustrated with this urinal with a housefly image embossed in the enamel; the image "nudges" users into improving their aim, which lowers cleaning costs.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 38: Tintagel play:none">Tingeltangelia
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 106: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/3c/Paul_before_Felix.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 109: Paavalin roomalainen tuomari Feelix-kissa oli paha vanha vapautettu orja, desspicable tipejä jahtaava Sylvesteri, joka pl okkasi joltakulta 19-vuotiaan prinsessa Druzillan vaikka hiän oli jo toisen irtaimistoa. Tää siis ei ollut Julia Druzilla, Korkkarin suosikkisisko ja Clauden tytär joka syntyi nykypäivän Koblenzissa Saksassa, vaan Kyproxen juutalaisen kuninkaan Agrippan tytär.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 203: plethingcalledlife.com/wp-content/upl oads/2015/01/colossusofrhodes.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 218: ploads/2023/03/webApsis_mosaic_Santa_Pude-1.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 247: ploads/2018/07/vanha-rexona-mainos.jpg" height="350px" />
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 253: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 395: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4b/Dan_Andersson_vykort.jpg/800px-Dan_Andersson_vykort.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 399: Dan Andersson (1988-1920) räknas till proletärförfattarna, men hans diktning är inte begränsad till denna genre. Ibland skrev han under pseudonymen Black Jim. I synnerhet i tidningen Ny Tid, Göteborg, 1917–1918 kallade han sig så. Han översätte bland andra Rudyard Kipl ing och använde sig sedan ofta i sin diktning av dennes balladrytmer.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 406: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 410: Dan Andersson behärskade dragspel och fiol. Han var medarbetare i Ny Tid i Göteborg 1917–1918 och dessutom översättare till svenska av texter skrivna av Rudyard Kipl ing och Charles Baudelaire. Nu är han DÖD. Vägen har mörknat och benen bleknat.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 412: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 426: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 598: The Gemara (also transliterated Gemarah, or in Yiddish Gemore) is an essential component of the Talmud, comprising a collection of rabbinical analyses and commentaries on the Mishnah and presented in 63 books. The term is derived from the Aramaic word גמרא and rooted in the Semitic word ג-מ-ר (gamar), which means "to finish" or "compl ete".
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 659: Todellisuudessa Lönnbergin raapale on 157 sanaa pitkä eli puolet liikaa. Jäi epäselväxi mitä Rahab sitten teki. Oliko nää ne Joosuan 2 vakoojaa jolle Rahab valmisti kivan makuusijan? Oliko mukana jotain bondagea? Oliko ne oikeasti homoja? Jotain tässä on pl agioitu Astrid Lindgrenin Veljeni Leijonamielestä. No joo, tässä toinen raapale:
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 680: ploads/Korppi-Tommola-3_uusi.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 700: In November 2008, on the 75th anniversary of the Ukraine famine, Muggeridge was exhumed and awarded the Ukrainian Order of Freedom to mark exceptional service to the country and its peopl e.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 38: ESINAHKAKUKKULA play:none">Siionismia
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 45: Mulle tehtiin frenulopl astia kielijänteeseen joskus esimulkkuna. Sitä tehdään myös alapään eri kiinnikkeille. Sillä hoidetaan myös fimoosia, josta on mainintoja albumissa 114 et passim.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 59: Liian lyhyt suu- tai sukupuolielinten frenulum voi vaatia frenulektomiaa tai frenulopl astiaa normaalin liikkuvuuden saavuttamiseksi.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 77: Tamaroiden tapauxet on musta ehkä Raamatun rohkaisevimpia kertomuxia. Niistä on jo ollut paljon paasausta mm. albumeissa 14, 156, 163, 171 ja 185, mutta niitä kelpaa kertoa aina uudestaan! Ne on kuin korankorville pl ärättyjä pornokuvia.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 124: Isän väistelemä Absalom alkoi vehkeilemään tätä vastaan ja huudatutti izensä juutalaisten kurkoxi. Daavid lähti käpälämäkeen mukanaan kreetti ja pl eetti pl us muuan gatilainen mamu. Tien päällä sattui kummallekin osapuolelle sen seizemän sekalaista vehkeilyä. Paras vehkeilijä oli Alitohveli, mutta Husakaan ei ollut hullumpi. Kurkot ize olivat huisin pöljiä.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 126: The Achaeans were a proto-Greek component of the Sea Peopl es from Crete, and the Cretans were allied for centuries with the Pelishtim, to the point where “Creti and Pleti” was a common phrase for King David’s bodyguard. The Pelishtim (pelasgit?) are commonly referred to as “uncircumcised” in the Bible. At least one archaeologist has no problem with calling the Pelishtim “Greeks.”
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 131: ploads/2018/02/Tabernacle-coverings.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 141: ploads/2015/07/Chaldeans-destroy-the-Brazen-Sea-in-Templ e-Tissot.jpg" width="100%"/>
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 159: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b7/Francesco_Hayez_017.jpg/800px-Francesco_Hayez_017.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 232: Rehoboam (/ˌriːəˈboʊ.əm/; Hebrew: רְחַבְעָם, Rəḥaḇʿām; Greek: Ροβοάμ, Rovoam; Latin: Robocop, transl. "an enlarged penis") was, according to the Hebrew Bible, the first monarch of the Kingdom of Judah after the spl it of the united Kingdom of Israel. He was a son of and the successor to Solomon and a grandson of David. In the account of I Kings and II Chronicles, Rehoboam saw his ruler limited to only the Kingdom of Judah in the south following a rebellion by the ten northern tribes of Israel in 932/931 BCE, which led to the formation of the independent Kingdom of Israel under the rule of Jeroboam in the north..
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 234: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3d/King_Solomon_in_Old_Age_higher-contrast_version.png/800px-King_Solomon_in_Old_Age_higher-contrast_version.png" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 239: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/30/Jean-Honor%C3%A9_Fragonard_-_Jeroboam_Offering_Sacrifice_for_the_Idol_-_WGA08049_%28cropped%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 288: ploads/2016/12/jenna-jameson-shops-at-the-grove-in-west-hollywood-12-21-2016-2.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 291: ploads/2021/12/RonJeremyHyatt157336.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 300: ploads/featured-img/j/joanna-angel-300x482.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 303: ploads/2014/01/861.jpg" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 309: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 378: Kristiina Halkola: "Ennen ihmisillä oli aikaa räpl ätä toisiaan kännykän räpl äämisen sijaan."
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 408: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/fc/Akukorhonen.jpg/360px-Akukorhonen.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 414: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/3e/Ensio-Rislakki-1958.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 490: ploads/2019/04/Joseph_Shulam-4.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 546: ploads/teen-takes-nude-selfie-mirror-scaled.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 594: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/dd/Cordelia-Edvardson-journalist-392018753071.jpg/500px-Cordelia-Edvardson-journalist-392018753071.jpg" height="300px"/>
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 677: Silvia jätti sitten Altertumswissenschaftin ja päätyi toimittajaxi Frankfurter Rundschauhun. Kritische, kompetente und prägnante Berichterstattung über soziale, politische, wirtschaftliche Themen; nach 16 Jahren in der Branche Kennerin der Medienlandschaft und ihrer Entwicklung sowie der Arbeitsweise in den Redaktionen; Einblicke in politische Zusammenhänge und in die Wirkung von Machtstrukturen in Entscheidungsprozessen; Affinität zu Wirtschafts- und Verbraucherthemen. Positiv, kommunikativ, wertschätzend; dipl omatisch, strategisch, effizient.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 38: SYYLÄMUNATESTI play:none">Hullutusta
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 63: Vittuako pikkuhattu Patti jaxaa vatkuttaa Oidipus-kompl exista. Se oli tuskin ize turvonneenakaan tulitikkulaatikkoa pitempi. Pettymyxenmakuinen lerpahdus. Patti vaikuttaa ikävältä ihmiseltä, sen "herkkyys hyvälle" on mätää sentimentalismia. Isätön, naisten kasvattama mammanpoika. Jotain pederastista on sen suhteessa "setäläiseen" ja "Jymyä" polttelevaan Ville Timoseen, jonka sarkahousut haisi hyvältä. Kolmantena hyväkkäänä "kronikkarunoilija Kalle Kettunen", jota Patti puski päällä mahan alle. Osuuskaupan myyjää pyysi tiskin alta hamuilemaan "pannaania." Ota kiinni mandariini, osuuskaupan tissiliivi.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 65: Patti alkoi opiskella venäjää ja kirjallisuutta. Luki Eino Leinon Tummaa izesäälin vallassa. Patti oli kuin Aku Ankka Savon murteella. "Mää matkoosi rumahinen! Ee tässä paljaalla leevällä eletäk!" Patti halusi tulla piippua sauhuttavaxi setäläisexi. Oikeasti Patti tahtoi olla romanihenkilö, vaikka Stavrogin. Tai Charlie Chapl in, eller Tarmo Manni. Kirjanpitoa ei oppinut mutta siivoamista ja postinkantoa.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 182: VIDEOpl ay; clipboard-write; encrypted-media; gyroscope; picture-in-picture; web-share" allowfullscreen>
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 194: Who we are and that we belong here – And that we are one of the good peopl e. We
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 203: expl ained the situation, and was told that it would be acceptable for me to come
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 205: countless American workpl aces since the attacks on the World Trade Center and the
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 208: become a commonpl ace solution in organizations. Identity, identification, and
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 225: reflection or looking at the ‘big picture’ of their workpl ace. The symbol of
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 227: contrast, as consultant and empl oyee, I often hear clients and colleagues talk
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 232: as workpl ace firefighters are the same ones who ignite emotional fires and produce
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 235: this poem helps peopl e to feel understood and not discounted.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 237: My next exampl e is a
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 240: empl oy various abbreviations and short-hands to refer to common workpl ace
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 248: Anger. Tears. Sobs. Numbness. Helpl essness. For both mother and doctor, Obsessive
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 250: rehearsals for the past. Repl ays of what had already pl ayed out. Anything to
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 303: peopl e who are metaphoric ‘watch(wo)men’ of others: from widows to parents, to
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 335: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 339: Tohtori Kavaler-Adler on tuottelias kirjailija, jolla on viisi julkaistua kirjaa ja 60 vertaisarvioitua psykoanalyyttistä artikkelia, jotka on kirjoitettu objektisuhteiden teoreetikon ja harjoittajan asemasta. Pääpaino on hahmon patologiassa, surussa, surussa, kehityssurussa, demoni-rakastajakompl eksi, luovat lohkot, psyykkinen anoreksia, itsesabotaasi ja parisuhdeongelmat. Tohtori Kavaler-Adler sai 15 palkintoa eräästä psykoanalyyttisestä kirjoituksestaan. Työssään yksilöiden ja ryhmien kanssa hän hyödyntää Fylli-tädin kehittämiä ainutlaatuisia meditatiivisen psyykkisen visualisoinnin tekniikoita sekä lääkärileikkejä opinto- ja ohjausryhmissään. Olipa aika nippu amerikanjuutalaisia!
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 364: ploads/1/2020/10/Kate-Bush-4-1.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 439: "La cumparsita" on uruguaylaisen muusikon Gerardo Matos Rodríguezin vuonna 1916 kirjoittama tango, jonka sanoittivat argentiinalaiset Pascual Contursi ja Enrique Pedro Maroni [es]. Se on yksi kaikkien aikojen tunnetuimmista ja tunnistetuimmista tangoista. Roberto Firdo, kappaleen kantaesittäneen orkesterin johtaja ja pianisti, lisäsi osia tangoistaan "La gaucha Manuela" ja "Turda compl eta" Matoksen karnevaalimarssiin ("La cumparsita"), jolloin tuloksena on "La cumparsita", kuten se tällä hetkellä tunnetaan. "La cumparsita" soitettiin ensimmäisen kerran julkisesti vanhassa Café La Giraldassa Montevideossa, Uruguayssa. Montevideon hanurimuseo sijaitsee tällä hetkellä tällä historiallisella paikalla.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 444: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 455: Mirkka Rekola oli Jaan Kapl inskin veroinen ajattelija. Sillä ei vielä kuuhun mennä.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 467: pload/w_959,h_636/13-3-9500872.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 475: pload/w_958,h_539/13-3-9501093.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 490: pload/w_958,h_539/13-3-9501504.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 524: pload/499/stan-christina-grof_o5cejk" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 538: Synnytysprosessi - tapa, jolla lapsi lipsahtaa synnytyskanavan läpi - on erittäin traumaattinen kokemus, joka on verrattavissa vain kuoleman kokemukseen. Loppujen lopuksi äiti, joka hoiti ja hoiti lasta uskollisesti yhdeksän kuukautta, supisstuu yhtäkkiä kiihkeästi ja yrittää työntää lasta tuntemattomaan. Tällainen kuoleman ja uudestisyntymisen kokemus jättää syvän jäljen (jäljen) ihmisen psyykeen, ja se määrittää hänen henkisen tilansa koko hänen elämänsä ajan: hänen käyttäytymismallinsa, asenteensa maailmaan, itseensä ja jopa alttiuden psykosomaattisille vaikutuksille, sairaudet. Loppujen lopuksi kuinka usein saamme itsemme tuntemaan, että "askelemme samalla haravalla" tai "kuljemme ympyrää" - tämä on vanhojen malliemme oivallus käytännössä. Saammeko outoja, käsittämättömiä tunteita, kuvia, emmekä ymmärrä mistä ne tulevat? Usein vastaukset löytyvät juuri syntymämme mysteeristä. Oliko synnytys luonnollinen ja ilman kompl ikaatioita, kuinka kauan kesti kohdun avautumisaika ja sikiön kulkeminen synnytyskanavan läpi, käytettiinkö anestesiaa tai keisarileikkausta - miten isämme työnsi mällin kohdunperälle - kaikki tämä on erittäin tärkeää ja sillä on ratkaiseva vaikutus tulevaisuuteen lapsen kohtalo.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 602: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/1d/ACombs.png" />
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 614: Neurobiologia, jungilaiset arkkityypit, puutarhayhteiskunnat, hermeneutiikka, hegeliläinen dialektiikka, systeemiteoria, zen-koaanit, poststrukturalismi, vedantalainen hindulaisuus, kapitalistiset talousjärjestelmät, transpersoonalliset tietoisuustilat, uuspl atoniset muodot – lista jatkuu ja jatkuu – kaikki selitetty ja sopivat siististi yhteen yhdelle todellisuuskartalle, jota hän puoliironisesti kutsuu "kaiken teoriaksi". Ennen kaikkea hän onnistuu selittämään kaiken selkeällä ja loistavalla proosalla. Tunnet kirjaimellisesti itsesi viisaammaksi lukiessasi häntä.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 619: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 623: pload/w_250/657/valde_finland_lepwk3_qEMtuB" />
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 633: Campbellin mielestä uskonnolliset symbolit tulisi tulkita monomaanisixi mytologisiksi meemeixi eikä historiallisiksi faktoiksi, jolloin symboleissa voidaan alkaa nähdä syvempiä merkityksiä. Campbell's theories have been appl ied by a wide variety of modern writers and artists. His philosophy has been summarized by his own often repeated phrase: "Follow your bliss." He sure did, fucking hedonist.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 635: He was the shiftless elder son of a well-to-do hosiery importer and wholesaler in White Plains, New York. He studied biology and mathematics, but decided that he preferred the humanities. An accompl ished athlete, he received awards in track and field events, and, for a time, was among the fastest half-mile runners in the world.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 637: On the ship during his return trip from an old world tour he encountered the messiah elect of the Theosophical Society, Jiddu Krishnamurti; they discussed Indian philosophy (that Jiddu had up to his gills by then), sparking in Campbell an interest in Hindu and Indian thought. Lacking faculty approval, Campbell withdrew from graduate studies, becoming a close friend of the budding writer John Steinbeck and his wife Carol. Campbell had an affair with Carol. Campbell too began writing a novel on the "Doc" of Cannery Row but unlike Steinbeck, did not compl ete his book, instead published a lot of trash on mythology and got rich(er).
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 639: Campbell attended a Grateful Dead concert in 1986, and marveled that "Everyone has just lost themselves in everybody else here!" Campbell died at his home in Honolulu, Hawaii, on October 30, 1987, from compl ications of esophageal cancer. The works of Arthur Schopenhauer and Friedrich Nietzsche had a profound effect on Campbell's thinking; he quoted their writing frequently. Sinclair's Babbitt did not follow his (Joe's) bliss, while Schopenhauer ans Nietzsche did, enviously watching Joseph hump his best friend's wife. Jung's insights into archetypes were heavily influenced by the Bardo Thodol (also known as The Tibetan Book of the Dead, an interesting tidbit on the side).
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 646: God is a metaphor for a mystery that absolutely transcends all human categories of thought, even the categories of being and non-being. Those are categories of thought. I mean it's as simpl e as that. So it depends on how much you want to think about it. Whether it's doing you any good. Gets you closer to your bliss. Whether it is putting you in touch with the mystery that's the ground of your own being. If it isn't, well, it's a lie. So half the peopl e in the world are religious peopl e who think that their metaphors are facts. Those are what we call theists. The other half are peopl e who know that the metaphors are not facts. And so, they're lies. Those are the atheists.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 648: As simpl e as that. Campbellillä onkin ollut suuri vaikutus tieteiskirjallisuuteen, fantasiakirjallisuuteen ja tieteiselokuviin. George Lucas on kertonut, että Tähtien sodan perusideat perustuivat Campbellin teosten esittämiin ajatuksiin. Käsikirjoittaja Christopher Vogler on kirjoittanut Campbellin teorioita soveltavan teoksen The Writer´s Journey: Mythic Structure For Writers, joka puolestaan on vaikuttanut useiden elokuvien käsikirjoituksiin, mm. Leijonakuninkaaseen ja Matrix-elokuvasarjaan.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 729: taas hänen hovissaan olivat kiertävät pl aneetat.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 37: JEHOVAN IHMISSUHDE play:none">Harrasta pyllistelyä
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 40: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/86/Carl_Schleicher_Eine_Streitfrage_aus_dem_Talmud.jpg/1460px-Carl_Schleicher_Eine_Streitfrage_aus_dem_Talmud.jpg?20120818181441" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 52: I skolorns får våra barn sexualuppl ysning och resultatet är att dom blir angivare, horor, lögnare, avfällingar. Vi själva blev sådana utan separat uppl ysning! Våra döttrar går på gatorna som horor. Våra hustrur sitter på barer, talar ett oanständigt språk, använder smink och grälla kläder som blottar allt, läser pornografi, lär sig där det bästa sättet att suga kuk. (Ingen dålig idé vid närmare eftertanke, minsann.)
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 58: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/d/df/Ciseri%2C_Antonio_-_Das_Martyrium_der_sieben_Makkab%C3%A4er_-_1863.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 132: Pastori Norman Thomas oli jutkukommarien hampaissa. Thomas oli wimpy pasifisti. It was Thomas's position as a conscientious objector that drew him to the Socialist Party of America (SPA), a staunchly antimilitarist organization. When SPA leader Morris Hillquit made his campaign for mayor of New York in 1917 on an antiwar pl atform, Thomas wrote to him expressing his good wishes. To his surprise, Hillquit wrote back, encouraging the young minister to work for his campaign, which Thomas energetically did. Soon thereafter he himself joined the Socialist Party. Thomas was a Christian socialist. Eihän siitä tullut lasta eikä paskaakaan. De amerikanska kapitalisterna var inte ens kloka nog att kontrollera sina egna organisationer. Amerikansk kapitalism saknade klassmedvetande och vanligt politiskt egenintresse. Nu har dom lärt sin läxa nog. Det är inte socialismen där en individ har värde, utan kapitalismen, där det mäts i dollars.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 134: Män är djur, djur. Men det är kvinnor med. Är människorna bara det här? Ja minsann. Bröst och höfter, kuk och fitta. Är det här livet? Är detta kommunism? Eller kapitalism? Nåja, bådadera. Det finns ingen gud, ingen 5-årspl an, ingen mening. Det bara är som det är.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 155: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/56/Jephthah%27s_sacrifice_-_Maciejowski_Bible.JPG" />
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 269: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/af/Moses_Isserles.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 290: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ed/Picart_Sukkos_Feast_of_the_Tabernacle_Meal_in_Sukkah_1724.jpg/500px-Picart_Sukkos_Feast_of_the_Tabernacle_Meal_in_Sukkah_1724.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 325: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 339: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/47/Jerusalem_Mea_Shearim_posters.jpg/340px-Jerusalem_Mea_Shearim_posters.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 342: Yosef Rivlin, one of the heads of the Jewish community in Jerusalem, and a Christian Arab from Bethlehem were the contractors. The work was carried out by both Jewish and non-Jewish workers. Conrad Schick pl anned for open green space in each courtyard, but cowsheds were built instead. Mea Shearim was the first quarter in Jerusalem to have street lights.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 346: Neturei Karta (Jewish Babylonian Aramaic: נָטוֹרֵי קַרְתָּא, romanized: nāṭōrēy qartāʾ, lit. 'Guardians of the City') is a religious group of Haredi Jews, formally created in Jerusalem, then in Mandatory Palestine, in 1938, spl itting off from Agudas Yisrael. Neturei Karta opposes Zionism and calls for a "peaceful dismantling" of the State of Israel, in the belief that Jews are forbidden to have their own state until the coming of the Jewish Messiah and that the state of Israel is a rebellion against God.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 348: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/86/Members_of_Neturei_Karta_Orthodox_Jewish_group_protest_against_Israel.jpg/440px-Members_of_Neturei_Karta_Orthodox_Jewish_group_protest_against_Israel.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 366: Piyyut eli pillut (monikko piyyutim tai pillutim , heprea (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hebrew_language) : פִּיּוּטִים / פיוטים, פִּיּוּט / פיוט äännetään sanasta פיוט (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Help:IPA/Hebrew) Greek ποιητής poiētḗs "runoilija") on juutalainen liturginen runo, joka on yleensä tarkoitettu laulettavaksi, hoilattavaksi tai lausuttavaksi jumalanpalvelusten (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Jewish_services) aikana . Piyyutimia on kirjoitettu jonkun Temppelin (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Templ e_in_Jerusalem) ajoista lähtien. Suurin osa piyyutimista on hepreaksi (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hebrew_language) tai arameaksi (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Aramaic_language) , ja useimmat noudattavat jotakin runollista kaavaa, kuten sanaristikkoa. (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Acrostic) Esim. Heprean aakkoset (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hebrew_alphabet) tai kirjoittajan nimen kirjaimet.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 368: Monet piyyutit ovat tuttuja synagogan jumalanpalvelusten säännöllisille kävijöille. Esimerkiksi tunnetuin piyyut voi olla Adon Olam (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Adon_Olam) ("Maailman mestari"). Sen runollinen muoto koostuu toistuvasta rytmisestä kuviosta lyhyt-pitkä-pitkä-pitkä (tai hidas-hidas nopea-nopea) (ns. hazaj-mittari (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hazaj_meter) eli foxtrot/tango), ja se on niin rakas, että sitä lauletaan usein monien synagogajumalanpalvelusten päätteeksi, rituaalisen Sheeba iltaresitoinnin jälkeen, (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Shema) ja aamurituaalin tefilliiniprofylakterioiden pukemisen (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Tefillin) aikana. Toinen rakastettu piyyut on Yigdal (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Yigdal) ("Olkoon Jumala pyhitetty"), joka perustuu Maimonidesin kolmentoista uskon periaatteeseen. (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Thirteen_Principl es_of_Faith).
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 381: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/timeline/44ypetddihjslyqhvp5b8bakmhhvkc9.png" />
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 456: Vaikka juutalaisuuden hallitseva paine on se, että Jumala on aika persoonallinen, on olemassa "vaihtoehtoinen traditiovirta, josta esimerkkinä on ... Maimonides", joka useiden muiden juutalaisten filosofien kanssa hylkäsi ajatuksen persoonallisesta Jumalasta. Tämä heijasti hänen uskoaan negatiiviseen teologiaan : Jumalaa voidaan kuvata vain sillä, mitä Jumala ei ole. Rabbi Mordecai Kapl an (juutalaisilla ei ole kovin paljon eri nimiä), joka kehitti rekonstruktistista juutalaisuutta ja opetti Amerikan konservatiivisessa juutalaisteologisessa seminaarissa, hylkäsi myös ajatuksen persoonallisesta Jumalasta. Kapl an sen sijaan ajatteli Jumalaa "voimana, kuten painovoimana, joka on rakennettu universumin rakenteeseen", uskoen, että "koska maailmankaikkeus on rakennettu mahdollistamaan henkilökohtainen onnellisuus ja yhteisöllinen solidaarisuus toimiessamme moraalisesti, tästä seuraa, että universumissa on moraalinen voima; tätä voimaa konstruktistit tarkoittavat Jumalalla", vaikka jotkut rekonstruktiolaiset uskovatkin persoonalliseen Jumalaan. Joseph Telushkinin ja Morris N. Kertzerin mukaan Kapl anin "perinteisen juutalaisen jumalakäsityksen rationalistinen hylkääminen vaikutti voimakkaasti" moniin konservatiivisiin ja reformirabeihin, jotka saivat monet lakkaamaan uskomasta persoonalliseen Jumalaan." Pew Forum on Religion and Public Life 2008 US Religious Landscape Survey -tutkimuksen mukaan amerikkalaiset, jotka tunnustavat olevansa juutalaisia uskonnon perusteella, ovat kaksi kertaa todennäköisemmin kannattaneet ajatuksia Jumalasta "persoonattomana voimana" kuin ajatusta, että "Jumala on henkilö, jonka kanssa naisilla voi olla ihmissuhde".
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 499: Juutalainen perinne korostaa enimmäkseen suht. vapaata tahtoa, ja useimmat juutalaiset ajattelijat torjuvat determinismin sillä perusteella, että vapaata tahtoa ja vapaan valinnan harjoittamista on pidetty moraalisen elämän edellytyksenä. "Näyttää siltä, että sekä Raamattu, joka kehottaa ihmistä valitsemaan hyvän ja pahan välillä, olettaa moraalista epämääräisyyttä, että rabbit, jotka päättävät noudattaa hyvää taipumusta pahan sijasta, kuuluu jokaiselle yksilölle." Maimonides intti sinnikkäästi vapaan tahdon sopivan yhteen Jumalan ennaltatietämisen kanssa (Mishneh Torah, Hilkhot Teshuvah 5). Vain kourallinen juutalaisia ajattelijoita on ilmaissut deterministisiä näkemyksiä. Tähän ryhmään kuuluu keskiaikainen juutalainen filosofi Hasdai Crescasja 1800-luvun hasidilainen rabbi Mordechai Yosef Leiner Izbicasta, pl us tietysti Barukh Spinoza.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 37: Tyhmyyden Ylistys play:none">Hävyttömän typerää
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 206: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/61/The_Song_of_Songs_1853_Gustave_Moreau.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 262: In Amerike iz gor andersh, me nemt zikh zayt on shir In America, it's different. Peopl e are always saving time.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 273: Do zukht men tzu seyvn ekspenses af gevis, Here, peopl e are certainly trying to save expenses
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 294: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/83/Jessica_Fox_2016.jpg/360px-Jessica_Fox_2016.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 295: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c0/%D7%94%D7%A1%D7%99%D7%99%D7%A4%D7%AA_%D7%93%D7%9C%D7%99%D7%9C%D7%94_%D7%97%D7%98%D7%95%D7%90%D7%9C.jpg/800px-%D7%94%D7%A1%D7%99%D7%99%D7%A4%D7%AA_%D7%93%D7%9C%D7%99%D7%9C%D7%94_%D7%97%D7%98%D7%95%D7%90%D7%9C.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 299: ploads/2014/03/Block-and-Avraham.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 303: ploads/2015/09/diane_in_chair.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 354: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/bf/Nancy_Cartwright_1990s.jpg"
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 410: A lot of pl ot ideas have just come along and carefully landed in my brain. Another partner of mine and I started a series and postulated the tale of a brash young westerner trained in the secret arts by an inscrutable Oriental assassin. What a winner! For once something really original.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 418: A strong pl ot.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 428: That doesn't necessarily mean Budapest or the Himalayas. It could also mean a slaughter house or the inner offices of a drug operation or the backroom works of a gambling casino. But not normal living roooms and bedrooms of normal (viz. American) peopl e, they are BOOOOOORRRIIIIIING!
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 430: But those five -- pl ot, hero, motivation, action, background -- are the basic big ideas you need to move ahead with your story, so they are the things you should be kicking around, and not these six, by Ruthanne Reid.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 444: Just typical for a lady to start with the character and not the pl ot. For us men, eating fucking and bashing comes first, the choice of carcass, cunt or skull is secondary, same as burying beetles. But remember: Every really good story has some kind of conflict. No conflict, no story, just a big YAAAWWWN. The remaining 3 items on Ruthannes list are also hansypansy, lady stuff. Point of view, theme, style, WTF. Bet 50 shades had a lot of those. All we guys care about is lots of action and motivation (money, in other words, the rest like power and pussy can be bought).
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 454: Almost every movie, almost every story, almost every novel, almost every story of any enduring value is structured this way….in four parts. The same parts in a normal intercourse. (Actually there are five, but the last one is often pl ayed down or put in an Epilogue.)
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 458: Compl ication (hoito niskuroi)
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 472: To make him interesting, give your character a coupl e of conflicting personality traits. Maybe a character is wealthy and gives millions to charity but never leaves a tip in a restaurant because he thinks tipping is a scam. (I don't, and do. That is, I'd give millions to charity if I had some to spare. No tips, anyway.)
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 482: And remember this: a great hero needs and deserves a great recognizable villain. That is what was wrong with a movie called “Remo Williams: the Adventure Begins,” which was based on my Destroyer book series. In the Bond movies, 007 confronts peopl e who want to nuke London or steal all the gold in Fort Knox etc. etc. My guy, Remo Williams went up against some mope who was selling cheap rifles to the government…and no one gave a damn. Great heroes need great villains; otherwise they just look silly. The AI monster made of garbage in Remo vanha vainooja, now that was something else.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 513: As novelists, we create a character not by what we tell but by what we show. Show not tell, you know (fucking immigrants shut up). What does that character say? What does he do? What do others say about him? What do they think of him? What would he say if he was slapping a kid at the local Walmart’s? That’s characterization and it makes your fictional peopl e come alive.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 515: There is a hierarchy of character. Minor characters, you let vanish. Usually you bring them alive for a moment by using stereotypes. Stereotypes are not necessarily evil or bad; they are boring characters who are typical members of a group and your readers know the group… Cabbie, cop, waitress, nigger, telephone operator, prostitute, lawyer, doctor, politician, drunken Irishman (What? Are there still some of those?), Italian who talks with his hands. We might not like stereotypes of groups to which we belong but as writers they work. These are pl ace-holding characters; they do their job and disappear into the night. Writers of pulp fiction, say.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 517: Sometimes though they might do a little more. They won’t steal the real action but they set the mood, they add humor, they make the setting more believable. You can do this by making pl aceholders eccentric or obsessive. I read analysis once of an old flick called Beverly Hills Cop. It featured a clerk in an art gallery. He was effeminate. By itself, that’s not unusual. But he had a Jewish accent, and that was unusual because Jews weren’t generally treated as queens in Hollywood — it teems with them (although today H’wood can say anything it wants about Jews, even Christians. You can tell this was an old movie.) What that character did however in the film was to help make Detroit cop Eddie Murphy, the negro comedian, feel even more alien in L.A. than he otherwise would have.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 519: Heroes have their Achilles heels. The most honest president of the U.S. cheats on the golf course; that is what makes peopl e real. The late Robert Parker’s Spenser character was interesting. He was a yuppie. He ran, he lifted weights, he liked to cook, he liked unimposing little wines with sardonic personalities, he pretended he didn’t care about clothes but somehow always managed to wear the same basic uniform;, he lived with a woman, Susan the insufferable, who could psycho-babble Jay-Z into impotence. But the characterization hook was that Spenser spent his life being a private eye and shooting peopl e, which was totally alien to the character’s nature. That started to round him out and make him real. Without that hard edge, he’d have been just another fan of Barry Manilow.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 526: ploads/2018/06/rs-210661-Yogi-Berra.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 533: In Hollywood where they are always looking for blockbusters — but then don’t know what to do with them so they go back to filming comic books — for the thing they most desire is “high concept.” That means a clean pl ot, a story you can tell in one sentence. If you can't summarise your novel, well, imagine your novel-to-be is a movie already and tell us about it in a sentence. That should be easy enough.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 537: “Ahab, the obsessed, revenge-seeking captain of a whaling ship, sails his vessel and its crew to destruction, in a final confrontation with the great white whale that had crippl ed him years earlier.”
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 541: Liberals are always writing searing indictments. Warren is no ass-kissing liberal. Or was. For now he is just a carcass for burying beetles, or a heap of bones, or a matchbox full of ash. This is a one-sentence summary of his masterpiece, Templ e Dogs:
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 554: Here’s what we add to make Templ e Dogs a paragraph long:
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 573: Pfffft. Personally, I always thought Chandler was too cute by half and, like the author Trevanian for instance, too hell-bent upon showing you just how smart he was by using obscure little literary references, and this particular novel has a more compl ex pl ot than the King James version of the Bible. (I'm often just jealous.)
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 579: Warren ei pidä kustannustoimittajista. Jotkut pitävät, kuten Sofi Oxanen, joten siitä ei voi paljon päätellä. Sight. Sound. Smell. Taste. Touch. Squeeze. Exampl e: Huge bulge. Piuu Piuu Piuu Dojongg-jongg. Herring. Herring. Hard. Squirt! Squirt. Squirt. Muista tämä niin kirjoituxestasi tulee eloisaa!
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 594: Dialogue that sounds real. This is not tape-recorded dialogue but an attempt to make speech sound more realistic than it often has been written. Sometimes peopl e say things that aren’t exactly to the point; nothing wrong with that as long as it’s interesting and/or entertaining and can move the story forward. Cases in point: the overrated Quentin Tarantino in films like “Pulp Fiction.” One of the best at it was novelist George Higgins. Elmore Leonard is excellent; also Larry Block.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 596: Status objects. An essay by Tom Wolfe (Bonfire of the Vanities) put this in my head some years ago. A certain kind of person wants to wear shirts that have little alligators on them and another totally different type of person perhaps wants to have a statue of a black jockey on his lawn…or a pink flamingo. My late loving mother, a paragon of taste, once moved into our guest house and put painted pl ywood cutouts of the backviews of two peopl e, bending over as if pl anting something in the yard. Naturally, butt cracks were visible because they were the whole point of this architectural and horticultural displ ay. Since my house then was a mansion and a national historic site, I suggested that my mother take her pl ywood cutouts off the front lawn and put them in her backyard where nobody could see her butt. (I am a long time out of Alabama.)
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 598: Those things are all status objects. Here’s another: a guy rents a room in a sleazy hotel; it is a hovel in a dump. The floor of the room is littered with racing forms. Those are status objects and tell you something about the occupant. Or maybe the newspapers are neatly stacked against the wall and, instead of the racing form, they are copies of the Wall Street Journal with many stories circled by magic marker. Those are also status objects but should give you quite a different picture of the room’s occupant. Tattoos today are status objects; so too is a lack of tattoos. They illuminate character sometimes. And just as often an absence of intelligence. Its known as product pl acement on video. Rei Shimura has a lot of it.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 601: Finally, a large percentage of novels today are written in restricted third person viewpoint. In other words, in each individual scene, the author works through only one person’s head. Anybody else in the scene, except the major pl ayer at that moment, is made to live by his actions and his words, but not by you — as author — getting into his head and telling us what he’s thinking. (Obviously, by the way, private eye novels are in some way illustrative of this rule because most PI’s are written first person since it’s impossible to get into another character’s thoughts and feelings except by showing him cavorting on your literary stage.)
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 625: The Destroyer Series pl ayed a huge role in getting me interested in economics, geography, politics, history, and even in Jewish Mysticism and the paranormal! Richard Sapir (+1987) after all was a Jew. The Body, which was made into a movie in 2001, is about a Jewish archaeologist who finds a skeleton underneath an Arab shopkeeper's basement that might be the body of Jesus and the American Jesuit priest who is sent by the Vatican to investigate.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 629: Suppose you want to write a “big book.” No genre junk for you. Okay. Here’s what you need to know. A “big book” is just a genre novel that got bigger. More pages, more everything. just make it a little bigger, a little more breathless, give it a little more end-of-the-world panache. Think of selling it to Hollywood where they call it high concept but what that really means is that it’s a very short outline of a book for peopl e who can’t read a whole book or even a whole paragraph at once and their mind starts to wander after one sentence. Where was I? Ah yes:
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 640: Theme isn’t something you paste on after you write the first draft. Now, potboilers in general don’t have much thematic content because they doesn’t need to go far beyond: Bang Bang and the good guys in the white hats win. Theme is a more ever-present feeling that permeates the book you’re working on. Do you think when Ayn Rand wrote The Fountainhead or Atlas Shrugged, she first wrote the stories and then asked herself, “Now whatever could this be about? Selfishness?” But then, she was more political than most and, as I said, many books don’t have any discernible theme, except, buy it pl ease and make me rich. That's my theme anyway.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 645: Did you ever hear of a guy with pl umber’s block? Electrician’s block? Did a mechanic ever have mechanic’s block? No, no, and no. The reason is that none of them get paid if they don’t show up to work, so block isn’t really a viable option like flu. However for writers, it often is, but then, they don't get paid. Read Trollope’s autobiography. He worked according to schedule and if he finished a novel, but still had fifteen minutes left in his usual writing day, he would take a fresh piece of paper, write “Chapter One” and get started immediately. Time’s a-wasting, children, said Trollope and went out to fornicate some neighborhood trollops. It pays to be mediocre.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 647: I am proud that I never got to be as much as mediocre. Perfect is the enemy of good. (Oh, shut up, liberal, Who asked you?) I also worked with Clint on Lala land. It was great, and so was Clint. Steps is a book by a Polish-American writer Jerzy Kosiński (1933-1991, nee Lewinkopff, luopio, vsta 1957 loikkari), released in 1968 by Random House. The work comprises scores of loosely connected vignettes or short stories, which expl ore themes of social control and alienation by depicting scenes rich in erotic and violent motives. It was no longer recognized by any literary agent in the eighties. Random House turned it down with a form rejection letter. Well maybe it was a piece of shit to start with.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 652: Thank you for a useful and interesting writer’s blog, it really helps with my pl umber's block.
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 38: Американская трагедия play:none">Sonninsontaa
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 39: ploads/2019/01/64-300x458.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 83: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 235: ploads/2016/03/doax3front.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 236:
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 237: ploads/2019/03/DOAX3Scarlet.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 238: ple.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 241: ploads/2015/11/nude-girl-with-samurai-sword.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 278: ploads/2010/02/127.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 287: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/86/Arielsopo.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 39: Ilkeyden ylistys play:none">Pelkkää törkyä
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 59: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/1d/Peter_Schwartz.jpg" height="400px" style="padding-bottom:10px" />
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 60: ploads/2015/10/itsekkyyden-puolustuspuhe.jpg" height="420px" />
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 66: Why do so many peopl e (especially philosophers) hate Ayn Rand? She’s almost unknown in the UK - so much so that when there was a documentary about her on TV, The Daily Telegraph - a right-wing paper by British standards - felt obliged to expl ain to its readers who she was. She was, it said, “An unpl easant Russian-American fruitcake.” What was Ayn Rand? Cod philosopher, bad writer and deepl y narcissistic, severely socially impaired person.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 67: Why is Rand a cod philosopher? Simpl y because she was almost compl etely unfamiliar with the entire philosophical canon.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 68: Why is Rand a bad writer? Her writing is simpl y illogical, incomprehensible and blabbering. Her heroes and heroines are but pastiches, cliché-like cardboard figurines. Her world is black and white; either the character is a hero or a crook, but never anything in-between. Moreover, they fail the reality check; Howard Roark of The Fountainhead would not be the heroic creative mind he is represented; the reality check would be a similar megalomaniac sociopath as Le Corbusier.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 151: Selfishness is being concerned excessively or exclusively, for oneself or one's own advantage, pl easure, or welfare, regardless of others. Selfishness is the opposite of altruism or selflessness; and has also been contrasted (as by C. S. Lewis) with self-centeredness.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 154: Sanakirjat ovat tästä herttaisen 1-mielisiä: the fact of caring only about yourself rather than about other peopl e.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 161: Sellaiset ovat markkinat ja huomenna isot toripäivät. Surkimuksia turpiin, se on nykyajan sankariteko. Niin että jos vaikkapa mutantit ninjakilpikonnat ja rotta Tikku sattuisivat tähän nyt hyviään tekemään, heidän olisi tykkänään käännettävä kelkkansa. Ei enää köyhien hyysäämistä! Päinvastoin, puukko hampaissa kimppuun ja nylkemään neitoselta viimeistäkin ihokasta ja täyttämään sen kukkaroa iloisten puolikuoriveikkojen cumilla. For the TV show, TMNT creator Peter Laird decided to give each Turtle a different color to make it easier to tell them apart: Leonardo has a blue bandana, Raphael a red bandana, Donatello a purpl e bandana and Michelangelo an orange bandana. Kilpurit pelaa Aprilin kanssa räsypokkaa ja April häviää.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 186: quid iuuat hoc, templ is nostros inmittere mores Mitä hyötyä on tuoda muoti-ilmiöitä temppeleihimme
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 199: Haec cedo ut admoveam templ is et farre litabo. Annas kun annan nämä uhrina temppeleihin, niin siivosti uhraan.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 220: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/3b/Frederic_Remington_-_Radisson_and_Groseilliers.jpg/600px-Frederic_Remington_-_Radisson_and_Groseilliers.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 223: Accusé de traîtrise par certains historiens canadiens-français en raison de ses nombreux changements d'allégeance, il est l'un des personnages les pl us colorés et controversés de l’histoire de la Nouvelle-France.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 236: kemianteollisuuskompl eksin hautomo Syracusassa. Vaikka tämä teollisuus stimuloi
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 273: src="https://www.learning-mind.com/wp-content/upl oads/2020/07/Lauren-Edwards-Fowle.jpg"
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 405: ploads/2022/04/nemi-page-1-768x1085.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 429: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/ad/Scythia-Parthia_100_BC.png" />
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 469: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/b3/Morte_di_Attila%2C_Ferenc_Paczka.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 486: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5d/Attila_il_flagello_di_Dio_%281954%29_Anthony_Quinn_10.png/1280px-Attila_il_flagello_di_Dio_%281954%29_Anthony_Quinn_10.png" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 559: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/3/33/Tom_Cruise_by_Gage_Skidmore_2.jpg/714px-Tom_Cruise_by_Gage_Skidmore_2.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 578: Täytyypä kazoa mitä Mätien tomskujen tampiot tästä sanovat! Top critics: Cruise’s toothy heroics are ill-suited to moral compl exity, but he is elevated by a stellar supporting cast... A summer genre movie for grown-ups. Too-long Grisham thriller is full of adult themes. Höh, montako panoa? Näytetäänkö muka kuinka se menee sinne? (Ilmeisesti noin 2, ei näytetä.) The Firm amusingly satirizes the New Traditionalist aspirations of today's young urban elite -- not so much the lifestyle itself as the illusion of utter security it represents. Alas, Tom Cruise is Tom Cruise, pl aying yet another variation of his screen image. A first-class thriller and thought-provoking morality pl ay. Is this a thriller? You've never scene (sic) a 'suspense film' drag its heels so depl orably. Moderately entertaining... and a big step up from the book. No, the book moved at turbo speed. At two and a half hours, the movie crawls. Two-and-a-half hour movies -- jeez, there ought to be a law.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 580: Nimetön: I find this movie boring and predictable the acting was poorly done which is hard for me because of the great cast the writing was awful and at times the movie went flat the chase scene at the end was comical and silly the whole movie was a mess. To put it simpl y, the film compl etely ruined the book. And that wasn't easy. This is such a bad film. It is an hour and a half too long, and the beginning and middle are insanely dull. The production value and score do not stand up to the test of time at all. This is an exampl e of all of the worst things about the 90's, which might be one of the worst decades for filmmaking. Es wird einfach viel zu viel geredet, als man schon längstens in die Tat umgesetzt hätte. Fazit: Lieber eine kürzere Geschichte dafür intensiver erzählen und Spannung aufbauen!
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 581: Wetback: Nunca pude comprender por qué The Firm se convirtió en arrollador best seller. El libro era un hormiguero de argumentos conflictivos, que sólo tenían en común su impl ausibilidad. Era preciso creer que un bufete de abogados en Memphis ocultaba las operaciones criminales de la Mafia, con 43 leguleyos obligados a callar, porque huir les costaba la vida. Por si eso fuera poco, había que aceptar un héroe capaz de sacrificarse por sacar de la cárcel a su hermano convicto, cuya existencia negaba como oveja negra y a quien no veía desde tiempo inmemorial. Lo increíble empataba con lo inconcebible, en rollos paralelos. El libro fue rechazado por editoriales hasta que Paramount le vio potencial cinematográfico e instigó su publicación. Tähti on tietysti Tom Cruise, joka juoksee kuin vinttikoira ja tekee temppuja kuin mountebank. Hän päätyy erittäin vakuuttavasti ahneuteen ja ahneuteen. Ei ole helppoa ylläpitää radikaalin tuskan ilmaisua kahden ja puolen tunnin ajan.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 584: Grisham enjoyed the film, remarking: "I thought Tom did a good job. He pl ayed the innocent young associate very well." Nojoo eiköhän tässä ollut riittävästi Cracker Jackilta ja Toothy Tomilta. Seuraava!
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 677: A cow comes flying over the battlements, lowing aggressively. The cow lands on GALAHAD'S PAGE, squashing him compl etely
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 39: PRINSSINNAKKEJA play:none">Lisää törkyä
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 76: plain/images/75/2_714305-2121x3243.jpeg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 87: pload/mediums/09/e/7/09e7a0945f58bd16b0aabfe4a9f5096f.png" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 141: ploads/posts/2015-11/1447680832_josephine-montilyet-1.gif" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 277: Uudelleenmarkkinointi Google Analytics for Displ ay Advertising -mainonnan kautta (Google Inc.) - Tietosuojakäytäntö - Opt Out
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 318: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/ef/NikolayBerdyaev_with_Maria_Skobtzeva.jpg/440px-NikolayBerdyaev_with_Maria_Skobtzeva.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 320: Kuvassa ukrainalais-latvialaista emigranttiälymystöä. Berdyadev ja Skobzova pl us joku snäfä häiskä linssiluteena jonka nimeä ei sanota. (Se on joku bulgarialainen Stefan Tsantsov, mitätön kärpässarjalainen.)
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 325: Syntyi aristokraattiseen perheeseen vuonna 1891 Riiassa, Venäjän valtakunnassa (nykyinen Latvia). Vuotta vanhempi kuin Margit Spranger, liekö tavanneet joskus Riiassa. Hän sai nimen Elizaveta Pilenko. Hänen isänsä kuoli hänen ollessaan teini-ikäinen, ja tästä kärmistyneenä hän hyväksyi ateismin. Vuonna 1906 hänen äitinsä muutti perheen Pietariin, missä hän osallistui radikaaleihin älymystöihin. Vuonna 1910 hän meni naimisiin bolsevikin kanssa, jonka nimi oli Dmitri Kuz'min-Karavaev. Tänä elämänsä aikana hän oli aktiivisesti mukana kirjallisissa piireissä ja kirjoitti paljon runoutta. Hänen ensimmäinen kirjansa, Scythian Shards ( Скифские черепки), oli runokokoelma tältä ajalta. Skyytit oli pl agioitu Blokilta. Vuoteen 1913 mennessä hänen avioliittonsa Dimitriyn kanssa oli päättynyt. Myöhemmin hän kääntyi katolilaisuuteen ja hänestä tuli katolinen pappi. Täh? Siis kenestä? No siitä vale-Dimitristä.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 424: Klassiske eksempl er: Hvis mange mennesker blir overbevist av et falskt rykte om at banken deres har gått konkurs, og alle drar til banken for å ta ut pengene sine, vil banken bli konkurs i virkeligheten, selv om krisen kun startet som et rykte.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 426: Repl y in response to David Penitente: First we are more important than ants as we have free will to be aware and 7-613 covenant connectors to grow our souls with.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 429: - But what does the story say about all the peopl e in the village that got raided? Repl y in response to Chaya Leah :
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 453: ploads/yhteista_aikaa.jpg" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 547: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 618: ploads%2Fsites%2F6%2F2011%2F03%2Fjennifer-lawrence_320.jpg&q=60" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 663: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 673: ploads/2022/04/NINTCHDBPICT000725073929.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 730: was an expl osion known as the Big Bang, but here it says God created heaven and
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 740: He pl ayed squash, sang in the Amherst Glee Club, and was a writing student of visiting novelist Alan Lelchuk (n.h.). [Merkittäviä kriittisiä tutkimuksia Lelchukista ovat olleet Philip Roth Esquiressa, Wilfrid Sheed Book -of-the-Month Club Newsissa, Benjamin DeMott The Atlanticissa, Mordechai Richler Chicago Tribunessa ja Steven Birkets The New Republicissa. Nämä olivat varmaan kaikki juutalaisia, kuten Lechuk izekin. American Mischief "Yksikään kirjailija ei ole kirjoittanut niin tietäen ja kaunopuheisesti lihallisen intohimon seurauksista Massachusettsissa Scarlet Letterin jälkeen." Philip Roth, Esquire. On Home Ground "On Home Ground herättää nuorille lukijoilleen ajankohtaisia kysymyksiä ja tekee sen niin taitavasti. Se saavuttaa niin paljon menestystä kuin baseball-harjoitus ja nostalgia." Juutalaisomisteinen The New York Times Book Review. Lelchuk kirjoittaa valtavan ilolla kuvista, sanoista ja järkähtämättömästä kuolevaisesta erityisyydestä. Naisille, jotka etsivät vastauksia, hän tarjoaa juutalaisia olankohautuxia, epäselvyyttä, joka on omituisen tyydyttävää." Catherine Bateson (juutalaisen Margaret Meadin juutalainen tytärvainaa ).] Brown spent the 1985 school year abroad in Seville, Spain, where he was enrolled in an art history course at the University of Seville. Brown graduated from Amherst in 1986.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 741: Danilla oli surkea muusikonura länsirannikolla jota nöyrä, sittemmin eroprosessissa kusetettu vaimo Blythe koitti turhaan buustata. Brown and his wife Blythe moved to Rye, New Hampshire in 1993, samana vuonna jolloin ize sain karkoituxen Kouvolaan. Brown became an English teacher at his alma mater Phillips Exeter, and gave Spanish classes to 6th, 7th, and 8th graders at Lincoln Akerman School, a small school for K–8th grade with about 250 students, in Hampton Falls. Aikamoinen mahalasku tuli Danille(kin). While on vacation in Tahiti in 1993, Brown read Sidney Sheldon's (n.h.) novel The Doomsday Conspiracy, and was inspired to become a writer of thrillers. He started work on Digital Fortress, setting much of it in Seville, where he had studied in 1985. He also co-wrote a humor book with his wife, 187 Men to Avoid: A Survival Guide for the Romantically Frustrated Woman, under the pseudonym "Danielle Brown". Brown's first three novels had little success, with fewer than 10,000 copies in each of their first printings. His fourth novel, The Da Vinci Code, became a bestseller, going to the top of the New York Times Best Seller list during its first week of release in 2003. It is one of the most popular books of all time, with 81 million copies sold worldwide as of 2009. Its success has helped push sales of Brown's earlier flops. Brown's prose style has been criticized as clumsy, to say the least. The Da Vinci Code committed style and word choice blunders in almost every paragraph. Recurring elements that Brown prefers to incorporate into his novels include a simpl e hero pulled out of their familiar setting and thrust into a new one with which they are unfamiliar, an attractive female sidekick/love interest, foreign travel, imminent danger from a pursuing villain, antagonists who have a disability or genetic disorder, and a 24-hour time frame in which the story takes pl ace.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 742: Brown's work is heavily influenced by academic Joseph Campbell, who wrote extensively on mythology and religion and was highly influential in the field of screenwriting. Brown also states he based the character of Robert Langdon on Campbell. Vizi tästä akateemisesta Joosepista taitaa ollakin jo paasaus! Brown does his writing in his loft. He told fans that he uses inversion therapy (ei tarkoita housut pois homopatiaa vaan roikkumista pää alaspäin kuin apina) to help with writer's block. He uses gravity boots and says, "hanging upside down seems to help me solve pl ot challenges by shifting my entire perspective". Dan on myös hanakka pl agioimaan muiden yhtä onnettomia kirjoja.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 761: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1b/Heroesjourney.svg/500px-Heroesjourney.svg.png" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 778: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/84/National_Security_Agency_headquarters%2C_Fort_Meade%2C_Maryland.jpg/1280px-National_Security_Agency_headquarters%2C_Fort_Meade%2C_Maryland.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 790: Vahvatukkaisesta Susanista on A-OK että NSA:n agentit tunkeutuvat "lupaa kysymättä" jonkun nörtin asuntoon tainnutusaseet kourassa ja vievät siltä salasanan digitaaliseen linnakkeeseen. NSA:lla ei ollut minkäänlaista tilivelvollisuutta tekemisistään. Tävskytti on Susanille kertomatta lähetetty Epsanjaan. Mixi Tävskytti? Mitä tekemistä lindkvistillä on NSA:n agenttihommissa? Susan vaikeni. Nyt hän ymmärsi. Kyse olikin vain rahasta. Strathmoren vaimo aikoi jättää hänet kuin Sirpa Temen 30v avioliiton jälkeen, koska kaveri on töissä 365 päivää vuodessa. Pelkät karkauspäivät (7 kpl ) eivät vaimolle enää riittäneet. Susan tajusi mixi hän niin arvosti Trevoria: Trevor kehui Susania kupl ixi ja kazoi kunnioittavasti sen paidan läpi kumottavia rintaliivejä. Samaan aikaan toisaalla Dave näkee japsun vainajana nakupellenä. Donde estan sus cojones? Dave kysyi sujuvalla epsanjan kielellä.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 833: ploads/sites/6/2020/07/NINTCHDBPICT000593072072.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 840: Dan Brownin entinen vaimo on syyttänyt bestseller-kirjailijaa "kaksoiselämästä". 20 vuotta kestäneen avioliiton aikana kirjailijalla oli useita suhteita ja hän nosti rahaa yhteisestä omaisuudesta rahoittaaxeen masurazastusta! Blythe Brownin kanteen mukaan, josta muun muassa "Peopl e"-lehti lainasi tänään, hiän tuki aina miestään takaa… mutta
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 863: pload/2020/08/30/7afb1456-ead9-11ea-8b7d-c799413e769d_web_scale_0.1271456_0.1271456__.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 929: ploads/sites/6/2022/06/MF-James-Susan-Patterson-COMP-1.jpg?w=620" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 940: ploads/2020/07/jkrowling-lede.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 25: Syntymästä lautaselle play:none">Nurinkurista
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 108: – Många unga fick höra att man ska belåna sig stort, för det gör alla. Nu sitter de pl ötsligt där med enorma lån som är större än bostadens värde.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 126: Vuonna 2010 Appl e
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 138: On havaittu, että sosiaalisen median kauneussuodattimet korostavat yleensä eurokeskeisiä piirteitä, kuten vaaleammat silmät, pienempi nenä ja punoittavat posket. Näiden suodattimien on dokumentoitu lisäävän sosiaalisen median käyttäjien kehonkuvan turvattomuuden ja kärsättömyyden tunteita, joita joskus kutsutaan "suodatindysmorfiaksi". Tämä suuntaus on saanut jotkut hakeutumaan pl astiikkakirurgiaan saadakseen itsensä näyttämään siltä, miltä he näyttävät sosiaalisen median suodattimissa.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 171: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8c/Hugo_Simberg_Garden_of_Death.jpg/725px-Hugo_Simberg_Garden_of_Death.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 175: Koillisen aluepäämajan Appl e-kalentereihin on huolella merkitty tulevat maaseuturetket
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 205: Teoria on seuraava: Infinite Jest on Wallacen yritys ilmentää ja dramatisoida vallankumouksellista fiktiota, jota hän vaati esseessään "E Unibus Pluram: Television and US Fiction". (Vittu et toi Sikiökin oli sivistymätön: "Unibus"? "pl uram"? HAHAHA. Jätkä ei osaa latinasta edes alkeita. Koitin lukea Sikiön ao. prujua mutta se oli loputtoman pitkästyttävä.) Tyyli on sellainen, jossa uusi vilpittömyys kumoaa ironisen ironisuuden, joka on 1900-luvun loppua kohden kovertanut nykyisen fiktion. Wallace yritti kirjoittaa vastalääkettä kyynisyydelle, joka oli valloittanut ja surullittanut niin paljon amerikkalaista kulttuuria hänen elinaikanaan. Hän yritti luoda viihdettä, joka saisi meidät puhumaan isänmaallista potaskaa uudelleen. On jo aika unohtaa Vietnamin turpiinotto, sitäpaizi rättipäistä saa helpommin mureketta, kun niillä ei ole niitä viidakoita missä kykkiä. Lisäksi lukuisia kirjailijoita on kuvattu New Sincerity -liikkeen myötävaikuttajiksi, mukaan lukien Jonathan Franzen, Zadie Smith, Dave Eggers (n.h.), Stephen Graham Jones (n.h.), ja Michael Chabon (n.h.). Ei kun suuri narratiivi takas kunniaan!
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 211: "Strategisen viestinnän konsortio" pitää webisivustoa suurista kertomuxista. Se perustettiin vuonna 2005 soveltamaan viestintätutkimusta terrorismin torjuntaan, kansallisen turvallisuuden edistämiseen ja julkiseen dipl omatiaan maailmanlaajuisesti.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 220: Goodall, HL, Trethewey, A. ja McDonald, R. (2006). "Strateginen epäselvyys, viestintä ja julkinen dipl omatia epävarmassa maailmassa: parhaat periaatteet ja käytännöt."
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 345: Hur är du som vän? – Tolerant, lojal och och dipl omatisk, ett typiskt mellanbarn. Jag har väldigt sällan konflikter med mina kompisar, utan är ganska anpassningsbar. Jag kan försörja mig och mina barn, jag lyckats få ihop livet som mamma och konstnär. Jag tycker också att Ola Söderholm, min kille, är rolig. Jag vaknar glad på morgonen och tycker det är jättekul att gå upp. Jag programleder podden En varg söker sin pod tillsammans med Caroline Ringskog Ferrada-Noli.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 347: På tal om kul, Sarah Sjöström är också bra om att leva i nuet. Hon pl anerar inte framtiden. När det går dåligt blir hon arg. Jag pl anerar inte särskilt mycket. Mina vänner säger att jag är bra på att leva i nuet. Vad säger din armhåla om dig? Kvinnorna i Andningsrummet är privilegierade. De har fina lägenheter i Stockholms innerstad och framgångsrika karriärer. Nähä, vi är vanliga medelklass-vänstermänniskor.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 349: ploads/2010/07/mileva_maric.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 352: "It was one of the great ironies of his career that the pacifist Einstein, through this action, should have helped initiate the era of nuclear weapons to whose use he was compl etely opposed." Haista paska kappalainen hyvin tiesi wiixiwallu mitä oli tekemässä, vitun luikero.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 354: "The establishment of Israel is an event which actively engages the conscience of this generation....It is, therefore, a bitter paradox to find that a State which was destined to be a shelter for a martyred peopl e is itself a Nazi State." Tämä puhe jäi Pertiltä pitämässä Israelissa kun maha-aortta halkesi.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 355: Dr. Thomas Harvey stole Einstein’s brain, pl anning to study it to try to determine whether he was a genius. Harvey measured and photographed the brain, and commissioned a painting of it from an artist who had done portraits of his children's brains. He kept it in a jar in a beer cooler in his basement.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 374: Ryssland. Där har den 18-årsgräns, står inpl astad i affärerna och klassas som
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 436: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c2/SIG_210-2_%286825677804%29.jpg/600px-SIG_210-2_%286825677804%29.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 437: ploads/2015/01/rolls-royce-14.jpg?ssl=1" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 512: "Kenkälaatikot oli pinottu väärin päällikkö", inttää haisupyrstö lakukepille. Juu kyllä perpetraattori on selkeästi senaattori, vain sillä oli korruptoitu vapaa pääsy rikospaikalle. Ei sentään, jenkki- ym länkkärien trillereissä ei pl utokraattipaskiaiset juuri koskaan ole konnia. Size on se senaattorin liukas apuri. Jepjep, sehänse onkin, selvisi kurkkaamalla lopusta. Roarke on törkymöykky öykkäri, mutta ilmeisesti jenkkirouvat arvostavat sellaista. Okei, jokohan tässä olisi jo riittävästi Genital Roberzilta. Vittu että tääkin nide oli pulppia.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 519: Rorty torjui "pitkään vallinneen" ajatuksen, että ulkomaailman esineiden oikeat sisäiset esitykset ovat tiedon välttämätön edellytys. Rorty väitti sen sijaan, että tieto on sisäinen ja kielellinen asia; tieto koskee vain omaa kieltämme. Tää nyt on kerta kaikkiaan hanurista, vanhaa kunnon homomensuuraa. Beliefs and words evolved, just as opposable thumbs and extralarge cocks, to help human beings “cope with the environment” and “enable them to enjoy more pl easure and less pain.”
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 532: Though deepl y pessimistic about the dangers of nuclear confrontation and the gap between rich nations and poor, Mr. Rorty retained something of Dewey’s hopefulness about America.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 534: plicetoday.imgix.net/upl oads/posts/photos/20492/rsz_7978112884_e84ea62e9e.jpg?ixlib=rails-2.1.4&auto=format&dpr=2&fit=clamp&w=1200&s=90a628fae9eaee25c0dac96c8eed2991" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 535: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bd/Iggy_Pop_at_Burger_Boogaloo.jpg/800px-Iggy_Pop_at_Burger_Boogaloo.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 548: Rorty defines redemptive truth as "a set of beliefs that would end, once and for all, the process of reflection on what to do with ourselves". A hand job, that is what I need. While science offers us ‘‘an edifying exampl e of tolerant conversability’’ or of ideal social cooperation, it remains an impoverished resource for self-flourishing. Kukoistus, hei täältäkö Eski Saarinen sen otti? Rortylta? No hmmm, se on kyllä positiivisen psykologian avainsanoja.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 550: What does it mean to flourish? As a person, I mean. We can probably agree that a pl ant which is healthy and blooming can be said to “flourish,” and that a business that is booming and raking in record profit is “flourishing.” But what does it mean for a human being to flourish?
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 552: Some might think of financial success as “flourishing.” Others might think of self-development and growth. You might believe that a person is flourishing when she is happy and content, or when she is learning new things and appl ying her skills to new challenges.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 556: Flourishing is one of the most important and promising topics studied in positive psychology. Not only does it relate to many other positive concepts, it holds the key to improving the quality of life for peopl e around the world. Discovering the pieces to the flourishing puzzle and learning how to effectively appl y research findings to real life has tremendous impl ications for the way we live, love, and relate to one another.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 558: Flourishing moves beyond the confines of simpl e happiness or wellbeing; it encompasses a wide range of positive psychological constructs and offers a more holistic perspective on what it means to feel well and happy. According to the “founding father” of flourishing, Dr. Martin Seligman, flourishing is the result of paying careful attention to building and maintaining the five aspects of the SPERMA model.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 560: The SPERMA model is a model Seligman developed to expl ain what contributes to a sense of flourishing. The five factors in this model are:
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 570: Accompl ishments (like Seligman, 2011)
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 610: Rorty narrates that the West’s first redemptive principl e was man’s relationship with God, the guarantor of universal truth, meaning, and salvation. God was eventually dethroned by the Truth of philosophy, as heralded by the Enlightenment and the scientific revolution. Truth’s goal was to decipher reality’s blueprint. At present, the truth is being nudged over by the Imagination. The modern imagination aspires to enlarge our acquaintance with humanity and enrich ethical relations. Rorty argues that a culture of imagination can serve the redemptive purposes previously ministered by religion and truth, only in a manner more suited to a liberal, secular context. He calls this a literary culture, a culture where meaningful human relationships are ‘‘mediated by human artifacts such as books and buildings, paintings and songs’’ (TRR, p. 478). For Rorty, the literary culture may successfully usher a new world motivated by the ideal of human solidarity.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 619: Redemption is also bound up with the sacred, or the locus of a manifestation of something great and holy as opposed to the profane or commonpl ace. Charles Taylor distinguishes the sacred as non-human forces located in ‘‘certain pl aces (e.g., templ es), times (e.g., feast days), actions (e.g., rituals), or peopl e (e.g., priests, victims)’’ in contrast to the ‘‘merely worldly’’ (2011, p. 118).
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 630: From an individual perspective, redemption can also be understood as ‘‘a longing for one’s life to be ‘made good’ by virtue of some kind of participation in the life of some larger, awe-inspiring thing’’ (Smith 2005, p. 82). It is about self-enlargement, or enlargement of one's penis manually in pirsuna pirsunamenti. In contrast to religious edification as spiritual upl iftment, Rorty’s version is designed for pseudo intellectual penal enlargement.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 648: versions of ourselves, for exampl e sitting on the toilet seat with somebody's erect pecker in the hand.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 650: There is a pl ace where we are always alone with our own mortality, where we must simpl y have something greater than ourselves to hold onto—God or history or politics or literature or a belief in the healing power of love, or even righteous anger. Sometimes I think they are all the same. A reason to believe, a way to take the world by the throat and insist that there is more to this life than we have ever imagined (Allison 1994, p. 181; PSH, p. 161)
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 809: Wenn ihnen pl ötzlich kun heihin äkkiä
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 927: Kirja koostuu Decameronen tai Canterburyn tarinoiden tapaan useista kertomuksista, jotka kutoo yhteen kehyskertomus. Kehyskertomus kertoo seitsemän pyhiinvaeltajan matkasta kohti Hyperion-pl aneetan aikahautoja. Matkan aikana pyhiinvaeltajat kertovat toisilleen kukin omat elämäntarinansa ja sen, miksi he ovat lähteneet mukaan tälle matkalle. Kirja on jaettu lukuihin, ja matkaajien minä-muotoiset tarinat esiintyvät omilla otsikoillaan lukujen sisällä. Tarina jää Hyperionissa kesken ja jatkuu suoraan Hyperionin tuhossa.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 931: Eli siis Tarina kertoo seitsemän pyhiinvaeltajan matkasta kohti Hyperion-pl aneetan aikahautoja, jotka ovat Lepinkäisen koti. Lepinkäinen ei ole lintu, vaan on olento, joka voi muuttaa fysiikan lakeja. Aikahautojen ympäristössä avaruusalusten miehistö katoaa ja pyhiinvaeltajat joutuvat taittamaan matkaa vanhanaikaisemmin tavoin. Aikansa kuluksi he päättävät kertoa toisilleen tarinansa ja syynsä, jotka saivat heidät ryhtymään tähän matkaan.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 979: Der Roman handelt von der Sehnsucht nach einer anderen, von pl atonischen Idealen inspirierten Welt.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 1006: Überraschend aber folgt er im zweiten Band dem Aufruf Alabandas, sich am Freiheitskampf der Griechen zu beteiligen. Als er sieht, dass seine Truppen – ganz im Gegensatz zu seinen Idealen – pl ündern, zieht er sich zurück. Der Tod Alabandas und Diotimas besiegelt sein Scheitern auf der politischen und privaten Ebene. Hyperion verlässt sein Heimatland und begibt sich auf eine Reise, an deren Ende die Scheltrede auf Deutschland steht. Schließlich lässt er sich auf der Insel Salamis nieder, wo er – keineswegs resigniert, dem Zuspruch des Göttlichen folgend – das Leben eines zurückgezogenen Einsiedlers führt.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 1055: yaaaaaawwwwwwwwwwnnnnnn… my god, this is soooo boring. And there are still 10 pages. Daniel, dude, why did you make that so boring….. what?…… boring topic? No man, there’s no such thing as a boring topic. There’s just boring presentation… yeah… look, we’re live so I can’t expl ain that now but we’ll talk later, okay… … … cool… oh, can you fetch me a coffee? Thanks.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 1062: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 26: Känslor i kroppen play:none">Tunnehälyä
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 46: ploads/2015/09/Var-sitter-k%C3%A4nslorna-i-kroppen.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 51: Grundkostnaden för deltagandet är 200 kr, men du är varmt välkommen att betala mer eller mindre, efter din förmåga. Du kan betala per Swish på pl ats eller per faktura. Maria Niemi föreläser om Meditation för den som har “svårt” att meditera, och om Mindfulness och ekopsykologi. Maria är legitimerad psykoterapeut med affektfokuserad psykodynamisk inriktning (läs mer här om psykoterapiformen som Maria erbjuder) och har flerårig erfarenhet som mindfulnessinstruktör (MBSR – läs mer här). Hon är även docent och forskare på Karolinska Institutet. Hon sitter med i styrelsen för den Svenska Lärarföreningen för Mindfulnessbaserade Program, MBTA Sweden.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 97: Amerikkalaiset eivät siitä yhtään tykänneet. Eric Bentley saw the pl ay as "a potential tragedy deflected from its true course by Marxist sympathies." Kiinalaiset ymmärsivät Willyä, joka koitti tehdä pojistansa louhikäärmeitä.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 99: He was born into a Jewish family of Polish-Jewish descent. His father was born in Radomyśl Wielki, Galicia (then part of Austria-Hungary, now Poland), and his mother was a native of New York whose parents also arrived from that town. Isidore owned a women's clothing manufacturing business empl oying 400 peopl e. They owned a summer house in Far Rockaway, Queens, and empl oyed a chauffeur. In the Wall Street Crash of 1929, the family lost almost everything and moved to Gravesend, Brooklyn.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 101: On May 1, 1935, he joined the League of American Writers (1935–1943), whose members were largely either Communist Party members or fellow travelers. In Rowe's view, all successful pl ays built dramatically from an "attack" (the introduction of a conflict), through a "crisis," and finally to a "resolution." Rowe consulted his government consulting on the use of drama as a propaganda tool to raise morale and to define America's goals during the war.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 111: Myrskyisän elämän elänyt O’Neill oli aviossa kolmasti. Hänen tyttärensä Oona meni 17-vuotiaana naimisiin Charles Chapl inin kanssa 1943, minkä jälkeen O’Neill teki tämän perinnöttömäksi, samoin kuin poikansa Shanen, jonka elämäntapaa isä ei hyväksynyt. Hänen poikansa ensimmäisestä avioliitosta teki itsemurhan.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 133: Vuoden 1942 lopussa O’Neill tutustui Charles Chapl iniin, joka alkoi opettaa hänelle näyttelemistä. Hän opetti hiänelle muutakin ja näytteli hiänelle erästä oleellista osaa, ja niinpä he avioituivat kesällä 1943 O’Neillin täysi-ikäistyttyä. Avioliitto herätti paljon kohua parin 36 vuoden ikäeron takia ja koska Chapl inin entinen naisystävä Joan Barry oli juuri nostanut häntä vastaan isyyssyytteen. Eugene O’Neill katkaisi välit tyttäreensä lopullisesti avioliiton jälkeen ja teki hänet perinnöttömäksi.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 135: Liitto oli onnellinen ja kesti aina Chapl inin kuolemaan vuonna 1977 asti. Heille syntyi kahdeksan lasta: Geraldine (s. 1944), Michael (s. 1946), Josephine (s. 1949), Victoria (s. 1951), Eugene (s. 1953), Jane (s. 1957), Annette (s. 1959) ja Christopher (s. 1962). O’Neill jätti avioiduttuaan urahaaveensa ja keskittyi vaimon rooliin. Perheen muutettua Yhdysvalloista Sveitsiin vuonna 1953 hän luopui Yhdysvaltain kansalaisuudestaan ja otti aviomiehensä Britannian kansalaisuuden. Chapl inin kuoltua O’Neill asui vuorotellen Sveitsissä ja New Yorkissa, mistä oli ostanut asunnon. Hän kärsi vakavasta alkoholiongelmasta ja kuoli vuonna 1991 haimasyöpään. Viinapiru oli Tyroneilla geeneissä. Oona ei voinut kyllästyä Charlien hassuun kävelyyn, kepin heilutuxeen ja wiixeen vetelyyn.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 178: – Jo, och jag undrar om det är lite som med musikalitet, att folk har olika mycket öra för det. Det känns i så fall orättvist. Har du ett böneliv? Jag själv hör ingenting. Själv föreställer jag mig helvetet som en pl ats där alla skulle höra vad jag sagt om dem och jag vad de sagt om mig.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 201: Tampereen yliopiston apulaisprofessori Seikko Eskola kääkättää nonagenaarina Hetmanin propagandapl ärässä. Suomi voisi olla Ruozina Ruozin paikalla ellei olisi ollut tota kiusallista punakapinaa. [Sehän olisikin hienoa, kato sveduja nyt .] P-sana on taas uusi normaali uusfasistisessa Suomessa. Pitäs mennä liisteröimään punavangin paskaa Seikkoloiden tönön seinään Taivaskalliolle. Vittu ryömi Seikko peikko mäntylaatikkoon ja vedä kansi kiinni perässä. Jätkä on ja oli täys lahtari ja sixi se saa paljon palstatilaa Herlinin propagandapl ärässä. Useita tärkeitä luottamustehtäviä kokoomuspuolueessa. Nuole kääkkä jo hyvä mies se lusikka ja käännä ääni pois.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 226: ploads/2017/04/Fotos-amadoras-japonesa-novinha-7.jpg" height="300px" alt="xxx" />
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 227: ploads/2017/04/Fotos-amadoras-japonesa-novinha-6.jpg" height="300px" alt="xxx" />
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 245: Eli on kivintä tirkistellä tisuja ja pikku pilluja kun niitä on yhtä aikaa kuvassa koko rykelmä. Sen on mainostajat tienneet aikapäiviä, tavaroita pitää panna esille isoissa kasoissa. Keräilijäapina pitää siitä että pl okkaus on helppoa. 5 japanilaista koulutyttöä yhtaikaisesti imuttamassa näyttää söpösemmiltä kuin vain 1.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 288: Bezos sees Amazon empl oyees as an expendable resource, allowing him to
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 291: unforgiving management style is similar to that of Appl e co-founder Steve Jobs,
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 294: Jobs was pl aced for adoption as an infant by his biological parents,
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 305: ploads/2020/08/mimi-jade-wiki-bio-age-net-worth-boyfriend-height-measurements-family-parents.jpg?ezimgfmt=ng%3Awebp%2Fngcb2%2Frs%3Adevice%2Frscb2-2" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 336: ploads/2012/12/Propaganda-de-um-bordel-de-Roma-em-1923.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 342: Mystiska uppl evelser & dissociation.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 348: Det finns 100 interaktiva pl atser på Zoom. Vi live-streamar samtidigt till Youtube (och spelar in så du kan se det senare också). Vår Fader har flere pl azer upp I himmelen om ni inte ryms.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 405: oVIDEO
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 34: Omituisten Otusten Kerho play:none">Omituisia otuxia
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 69: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 236: ploads/2023/07/1-1.jpeg" />
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 244: ploads/2023/07/2-3-300x180.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 319: Sukanta Bhattacharya, Bengali poet and pl aywright
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 326: ploads/2017/03/The-death-of-Charlotte-Bronte-393x510.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 343: Albert Camus, French writer, pl aywright, activist, and absurdist philosopher, suffered from tuberculosis. He was forced to drop out of school (University of Algiers) due to severe attacks of tuberculosis. However, his death was caused by a car accident.
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 347: Anton Chekhov (1860–1904), Russian short-story writer, pl aywright and physician; died from tuberculosis
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 359: Laura Don (1852–1886), actress-manager, pl aywright and artist
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 560: Suspected to have had syphilisplate Templ ate-Fact" style="white-space:nowrap;">
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 668: Finding out you have syphilis can be extremely upsetting. You might experience anger if you feel you've been betrayed, or shame if you think you've infected others. However, hold off pl acing blame. Don't assume that your partner has been unfaithful to you. One (or both) of you may have been infected by a past partner. Ditto if you unexpectedly get pregnant.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 25: Ole Oma Paras Ystäväsi play:none">Omahoitoa
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 53: What is real, lasting happiness? How does one achieve it? And why are so many peopl e holding themselves back? At the heart of this profound, simpl e, beautiful book is the wisdom of Mildred Newman and Bernard Berkowitz, married psychoanalysts who encourage readers to both love themselves and to confront life's hardest truths.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 62: ploads/sites/2/2018/04/516561486.jpg?quality=75&strip=all" height="250px"/>
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 71: Kun Adler korvasi Freudin käsityksen sukupuolihalusta silloisella niin kutsutulla "maskuliinisella protestilla" - joka ilmaisee halua olla ylivoimainen, tämä johti lopulta heidän murtumiseensa vuonna 1911. Adler päätti noudattaa omaa lähestymistapaansa, jota hän kutsui "yksilöpsykologiaxi". Kaljukotkan buzzard word oli "neuroosin" ohella "alemmuuskompl exi." Alemmuuskompl exi oli kuumaa tavaraa 20-luvun lopulla Eric Linklaterin antisankarin Juan Motleyn kiertäessä Olympian kanssa keskilänttä laulaen ooppera-aarioita pää alaspäin.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 76: keskittyi hyvin paljon menneisyyteen, kun taas Adler halusi vastata kysymyksiin: Minne olemme menossa? Mihin pyrimme? Mitkä ovat tavoitteemme ja miten ne vaikuttavat käyttäytymiseemme? Adlerille ihmisen olemisen olemus löytyy pyrkimyksestä siirtyä miinuksesta pl ussaan, vasemmasta alakulmasta oikeaan yläkulmaan GANTT-kartalla. Adlerin sanoin ilmaistuna: pyrkimys mennä alemmuudesta paremmuuteen.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 81: David Richard Berkowitz, also known as the Son of Sam and the.44 Caliber Killer, is an American serial killer who pl eaded guilty to eight shootings that began in New York City on July 29, 1976. He had read cousin Bernard´s book and was living it to the hilt.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 101: Luultavasti perin harva vaimo olisi tyytyväinen jos kirjoittaisi runon tuolla hinnalla - ainakaan useammin kuin kerran. Musta silmä opettaa. A good wife knows her pl ace. She fixes her makeup before the husband returns from work and tells the hungry kids to pipe down until he has eaten. She asks him how his day has been and does not volunteer her own hardships during the day.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 108: Alfred Adler oli juutalainen joka oli kääntynyt kristityxi. Ei ihme että sillä oli alemmuuskompl exi. Alemmuskompl eksista kärsivä kompensoi usein tiedostamatonta alemmuudentunnettaan mahtipontisella tai epäsosiaalisella käyttäytymisellä.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 121: Adleriin vaikuttivat filosofi Hans Vaihingerin ikään kuin filosofia ja Dostojevskin ikään kuin kirjallisuus. Vielä Wienin psykoanalyyttisen seuran jäsenenä hän kehitti teorian orgaanisesta alemmuus- ja kompensaatiosta, joka oli prototyyppi hänen myöhemmälle kääntymiselleen kristinuskosta fenomenologiaan ja hänen kuuluisan käsitteensä, alemmuuskompl eksin, kehitykselle.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 141: Nämä "tyypit" muodostuvat tyypillisesti lapsuudessa ja ovat élan vitalin eli testosteronipitoisuuden ilmaisuja (alaspäin vähenevästi). Adlerin mielestä keskimmäiset lapset (kuten hän) oli parhaita. Prostituution ja rikollisuuden ohella Adler luokittelil "homoseksuaalit" "elämän epäonnistumisiksi". Freudin mielestä homot oli narsisteja, Adlerista nillä on alemmuuskompl exi (tai ylemmyys, jos ovat päälläpäin).
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 159: 'Lord Beauchamp was caught b**ring the footmen and had to leave England in the dead of night to go into exile. I mean, you can't have peopl e b**ring the servants, darling, now can you?'
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 172: Shortly before the Duke of Sutherland's death in 1963, he and his second Duchess met Cartland at a lunch party in London. Clearly aware of her husband's amorous expl oits, Clare Sutherland turned to Cartland and said: 'Of course, Raine is Geordie's daughter.'
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 179: But on the return journey, his borrowed de Havilland Tiger Moth bi-pl ane broke up in mid-air while flying through a dust storm in South Africa, and crashed on the Drakensberg Mountains.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 183: 'PG, as I called him, was 25 at that time and absolutely adorable,' said Cartland, 'as well as being the most amazing lover. In my heart, I have always believed that he was Raine's father. I was shattered when he, too, died in a pl ane crash, while on active service during the war.'
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 199: But in actual fact their relationship was entirely pl atonic. She was sharpl y aware that Mountbatten, emasculated by the infidelities of his promiscuous and nymphomaniac wife, Edwina, had scant interest in sex in his later years, particularly with women.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 205: Cartland put a brave face on the snub, attempting to expl ain it away, but privately she was devastated. To save face, she threw open Camfield Place for a party for St John's Ambulance volunteers, appearing in the tailored brown uniform of the Order of St John, instead of her usual pink ostrich feathers.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 218: She talked loudly throughout the performance. 'I was there when that happened,' she shouted at one point. In the interval, the theatre manager, who had received compl aints from actors and members of the audience, asked her to be quiet.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 225: Unconventional to the last, she elected to be buried in a cardboard coffin in the grounds of Camfield Place, under an oak tree pl anted by Queen Elizabeth I, to the strains of Perry Como singing I Believe.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 226: Whatever her detractors may say, she was, triumphantly, her own creation, a magnificent original, and a feisty, gutsy, sexually-adventurous expl orer along life's highway.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 234: ploads/2023/06/cover-copy.jpg?lossy=1&strip=1&webp=1" />
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 239: ploads/2023/03/BCIMcC.jpg?lossy=1&strip=1&webp=1" />
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 242: Kukaan ei voisi olla pätevämpi ottamaan tämän valtavan tehtävän, pocketing the 5 or so millions, sillä Ian sitoutui uransa julkaisemaan Dame Barbaran teoksia. 30-vuotiaasta lähtien hän työskenteli väsymättä äitinsä kanssa tämän maapallon seikkailuissa, toimi dipl omaattina ja ovien avaajana, hallinnoi maailmanlaajuisia julkaisuoikeuksia ja TV-esiintymisiä sekä järjesti käännöksiä, jotka tekivät Barbara Cartlandista kiistattoman romanssin kuningattaren maailmanlaajuisesti.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 271: Dean Koontz USA 135M kauhujännäri Kuli What we do as a society is seek simpl e answers.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 276: Jackie Collins UK 85M romanssi Pilu The biggest critics of my books are peopl e who never read them.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 280: Barbara Cartland UK 5M romanssi Korkaamaton pilu As long as the pl ots keep arriving from outer space, I’ll go on with my virgins.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 363: Det å bli gammel, tenkte jeg ikke over før for 2 år siden da jeg pl utselig havnet på sykehuset en morgen. Jeg skulle dusje, så da vannet kom over hodet mitt, var det pl utselig vondt å få vann i håret? Jeg skjønte ingenting, så ble alt rundt meg "rosa?" Da besvimte jeg og hektet av glassdøren på dusjkabinettet. Jeg våknet etter noen sekunder på gulvet utenfor dusjen med døren på snei! Jeg hadde ikke følt meg dårlig før dette. Var frisk som en fisk og syklet mye. På sykehuset konstanterer de dobbel lungebetennelse, og flere mangler i blodet, bl.annet Kadium? Og jeg som spiser variert mat, tar mine vitaminer og noe kosttilskudd, vet ikke hvorfor dette skjedde. Men etter noen dager på sykehus var alt ok igjen. Det var ikke hyggelig å reise til sykehus med håndkle rundt håret og badehåndkle rundt kroppen uten noen andre ting med. Jeg ler av det i dag. Men tilbake til det å bli gammel! Plutselig skjer det noe uventet, som artrose, dårligere tarmfunksjon. Jeg la om kostholdet mitt 100%, og vips var alle smerter borte, tarmene har begynt å fungere normalt igjen etter å ha fått Ulcerøs kolitt. Med min nye måte å spise på, er alt bra hittil. Håper det fortsetter slik. Når man blir gammel, gjør det ofte litt vondt her og der. Men kostholdet er nøkkelen til god og smertefri helse. God sommer!
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 366: Jeg tror alt vi blir fortalt er forventet av oss fra ung alder i dagens moderne samfunn gjør mange deprimerte og raske til å dømme, og Norge er er forferdelig dyrt land å bo i, hvor det er høyt fokus på hva du har og lite fokus på hvordan du har det. Nordmenn generelt er jo kjent for å ikke like fremmede, folk går rett forbi folk som sover på gata fordi de antar at de er narkomane og at de er farlige. Jeg var på bussen i Oslo en gang hvor en mann var bevisstløs, det tok 20 minutter å overbevise bussjåføren til å stoppe, ambulanse måtte ringes etter 2 ganger fordi de avlyste første gang, alt fordi de antok at han var full. Da ambulansen endelig kom, fikk de vekket han, men de spurte ikke engang hva han het, de bare tok han av bussen og lot han sitte alene på bussholdepl assen. Jeg hadde blitt med bussen langt forbi min holdepl ass fordi jeg ville se at det gikk bra med han, jeg gikk av da han ble tatt med av og pratet med han etter ambulansen reiste igjen. Viste seg at mannen hadde besvimt fordi han hadde diabetes, han visste ikke engang hva han het. Diabetikere lukter ekkelt.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 402: Dance-, lip-sync-, skit- ja cospl ay-sisällön luoja, joka nousi kuuluisuuteen käyttämällä funkyfitz TikTok -tiliään. Hänellä on alustalla yli 1,1 miljoonaa omistautunutta seuraajaa.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 408: Hän esiintyi cospl ay-hahmona hittianimesarjassa Death Note for Halloween vuonna 2020.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 432: ploads/2021/01/beautiful-young-woman-blows-dandelion-in-a-wheat-f-U5PA8MZ-Large.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 26: Natasha Mail order bride...play:none">Housut pois hoitoa
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 54: Je me pl ais dans ces lieux déserts où le pied sonne, Pidän näistä autioista paikoista, joissa jalkani kaikuvat,
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 58: Et sur le pl âtre frais sont écrits au charbon Ja tuoreeseen kipsiin on kirjoitettu hiilellä
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 97: In 2004, Harper’s magazine published Natasha, a first short story by a promising 31-year-old Jewish Canadian writer, David Bezmozgis. This memorable tale of a doomed teenage love between Mark, a Jewish Toronto slacker, and his troubled (shiksa) Russian cousin by marriage was eventually released in a collection chronicling the lives of a Latvian immigrant family, not unlike the author’s own. Bezmozgis’s debut became a cult sensation with critics drawing literary comparisons to Bernard Malamud and Philip Roth. The story was subsequently reprinted in 15 languages. After penning two more acclaimed novels, then writing and directing his first feature Victoria Day (SFJFF 2010), Bezmozgis finally brings his modern classic to the big screen in a remarkably assured adaptation that’s both highly provocative and deepl y poignant. At the heart of this emotional, coming-of-age drama are the extraordinarily measured performances of Alex Ozerov as Mark and newcomer Sasha K. Gordon as the sexually precocious Natasha, the dark star who forever alters Mark’s staid, suburban existence. Fans of the writer’s original source material will not be disappointed in David Bezmozgis’s haunting narrative of forbidden love caught between the old world and the new, further proof of this talented artist’s notable command of both literature and the cinema. —Thomas Logoreci Note: Mature Content. A New Life in the west means a second chance for precocious Latvian jews.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 112: ploads/2016/10/natasha-bassett-australians-in-film-s-2016-awards-gala-in-los-angeles-6.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 114: ploads/2019/01/Natasha-Lyonne-9-768x1119.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 118: ploads/2018/11/Natasha.jpg?fit=1080%2C1080&ssl=1" />
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 120: ploads/818655.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 122: ploads/Natasha-Smith-2017.png" />
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 151: performing in expl icit hardcore movies at age
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 163: and Famous Peopl e Who Passed Away Today in
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 166: nippl es. Moreover, Poppens was also a singer in
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 202: Billy and Maria Dannreuther are among a number of travelers stranded in Italy en route to Africa. While the Dannreuthers seem like an average coupl e, they have the same goal as Mrs. Gwendolen Chelm and some of their other shifty companions -- to lay claim to property that is supposedly rich with uranium.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 221: ploads/2021/11/50-nude-pictures-of-gina-lollobrigida-which-are-basically-astounding-best-of-comic-books-30.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 381: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/ac/Swetlana_Alexandrowna_Alexijewitsch.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 386: Tässä se nyt on vapaus! Tällaistako me odotimme? Me olimme valmistautuneet kuolemaan ihanteidemme vuoksi. Käymaan taistelua. Mutta alkoikin "tšehovilainen" elämä. Vailla historiaa. Kaikki arvot romahtivat, paitsi elämän arvo. Elämän sinänsä. Rupl an etunenässä. Tuli uudet haaveet: saisi rakentaa talon, ostaa hyvän auton, istuttaa karviaispensaan... Vapaus merkitsikin pikkuporvarillisuuden arvonpalautusta, tuon jolle isovenäläisessä elämässä oli yleensä annettu turpiin. Hänen Majesteettinsa Kulutuksen vapautta. Pimeyden suuruutta. Toiveiden ja vaistojen pimeyttä - tuon salatun inhimillisen matelijan elämän, josta meillä oli vain likimääräinen käsitys. Me olimme käyneet läpi koko historian, mutta emme olleet eläneet sitä. Mutta nyt ei sotakokemusta enää tarvittu, se oli unohdettava. Oli tullut tuhansia uusia tunteita, tiloja, reaktioita. Aivan yhtäkkiä kaikki ympärillä vaihtui toiseksi: kyltit, tavarat, rahat, lippu. Ja ihminen itse. Hänestä oli tullut värikkäämpi ja erillisempi, monoliitti oli räjäytetty rikki ja elämä oli hajonnut saarekkeiksi, atomeiksi, soluiksi. Kuten sana- kirjassa: vapaa - vapaus - vapaa tahto - mielivalta - väljyys - avaruus. Suuri paha muuntui etäiseksi tarinaksi, poliittiseksi dekkariksi. Kukaan ei enää puhunut aatteesta, puhuttiin luotoista, koroista, vekseleistä, rahaa ei enää ansaittu vaan "tehtiin", "hankittiin". Kestäisikö sitä vielä kauan? "Rahan valhe ei katoa venäläisen sielusta", kirjoitti Tsvetajeva. Näytti siltä kuin Aleksandr Ostrovskin kuvaamat kauppiaat ja Saltykov-Štšedrinin tilanomistajat olisivat heränneet eloon ja kuljeskelisivat meidän kaduillamme.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 428: ploads/2020/04/josifas-stalinas-ir-klimentas-vorosilovas-71952326.jpg?is-pending-load=1" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 38: Gruppenbild mit Damen play:none">Antifaa
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 51: Group Portrait with Lady (German: Gruppenbild mit Dame) is a novel by Nobel Prize winning author Heinrich Böll, published in 1971. The novel revolves around a woman named Leni, and her friends, foes, lovers, empl oyers and others and in the end tells the stories of all these peopl e in a small city in western Germany in the 1930s and 1940s. As is usual in Böll's novels, the main focus is the Nazi era, from the perspective of ordinary peopl e. (Wikipedia en)
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 95: The story follows the life of a regular German women Leni Gruyten during 1930s and 1940s. Through her interactions with friends, family and other peopl e she knows, the regular folks' perception of the Nazi era is shown.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 121: Lenis Vater Hubert Gruyten ist Bauunternehmer. Bis 1933 operiert er hart an der Grenze zum Konkurs, dann geht es steil bergauf: Er verdient viel Geld am Bau des Westwalls. Dabei sind sich alle einig, dass er fachlich unbegabt ist. Er ist jedoch ein guter Organisator, furchtlos, vielleicht größenwahnsinnig. Er traut seiner Tochter trotz der schulischen Probleme viel zu. Wen er allerdings mit Bildung geradezu vollstopft, das ist sein Erstgeborener Heinrich Gruyten. Diesem will er den Krieg ersparen, doch der Junge, der mit seinem Vater ständig Streit hat, zieht diesem zum Trotz ins Feld und schickt Briefe mit Zitaten aus militärischen Texten nach Hause. 1940 stirbt der hochgebildete Heinrich einen sinnlosen Tod: Er und sein Vetter Erhard Schweigert werden wegen Fahnenflucht und Waffendiebstahls erschossen. Damit wird Leni zur „pl atonischen Witwe“: Sie wäre reif für Erhard und die Liebe gewesen und fieberte ihrem ersten Mal entgegen, draußen in freier Natur im Heidekraut. Der hochsensible Erhard hatte sie angebetet und ihr kühne Gedichte geschrieben, doch ansonsten waren beide so schüchtern, dass sie über ein paar Tänze nicht hinausgekommen waren, bevor der Tod Erhard holte. Leni fällt in tiefe Trauer.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 127: Im Juni 1941 lernt Leni auf einer Betriebsfeier Alois Pfeiffer kennen, der sich dort eingeschlichen hat. Er ist viril, aber nicht besonders intelligent und wird von seiner Familie gnadenlos überschätzt. Während andere ihm Berechnung unterstellen, glaubt der Verfasser, dass Alois sich wirklich in Leni verliebt hat und dass Leni einfach schwach geworden ist. Nach einer einzigen Nacht stellt Alois sie seiner Familie vor, dann wird der gesamte Pfeiffer-Clan bei den Gruytens vorstellig. Leni wirkt abwesend, pl ädiert aber selbst fürs Heiraten. Sie will kein Hochzeitskleid und es gibt auch keine Hochzeitsnacht, da Alois sogleich einrücken muss. Vorher gibt es jedoch einen erzwungenen Vollzug der Ehe im Bügelzimmer bei Gruytens, und so ist Alois für Leni „gestorben, bevor er tot war“. Der Tod auf dem Schlachtfeld lässt nicht lange auf sich warten. Leni, quasi zum zweiten Mal verwitwet, trägt keine Trauer und nimmt Alois’ Bild bald wieder von der Wand. Was bleibt, sind Nachname und Witwenrente.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 142: Die Liebesaffäre zwischen Boris und Leni beginnt Ende Dezember 1943 mit einer Tasse Kaffee. Sie bietet ihm, dem Sowjet, dem Untermenschen, vor aller Augen und mit großer Selbstverständlichkeit eine Tasse Kaffee an. Der Betriebsnazi schlägt mit seiner abgestellten Beinprothese Boris die Tasse aus der Hand. Inmitten des pl ötzlichen Schweigens – von den Zeugen „Lenis Entscheidungsschlacht“ genannt – nimmt Leni die heil gebliebene Tasse, wäscht sie seelenruhig, trocknet sie, füllt sie erneut und reicht sie Boris. Leni teilt von nun an ihren Kaffee täglich mit Boris. Eines Tages legt sie dabei ihre Hand auf die seine, eine erotisch und politisch kühne Tat. Es durchfährt beide wie ein elektrischer Schlag – mehr noch, sie erleben einen Orgasmus!
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 183: Das Buch ist zugleich Antikriegsroman. Für Böll waren die Bombardierung der Städte und das Leid der Zivilbevölkerung schlimmer als das, was die Soldaten an der Front erlebten. Viele Details offenbaren, dass Böll seine Heimatstadt Köln und deren kompl ette Zerstörung als Vorlage nahm.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 206: ples.ru/science/philosophy/max_scheler/anatolychubais_201305140632100.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 286: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 504: Genesis 6:1-4 When man began to multipl y on the face of the land and daughters were born to them, the sons of God saw that the daughters of man were attractive. And they took as their wives any they chose. Then the LORD said, “My Spirit shall not abide in man forever, for he is flesh: his days shall be 120 years.” The Nephilim were on the earth in those days, and also afterward, when the sons of God came in to the daughters of man and they bore children to them. These were the mighty men who were of old, the men of renown.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 506: There are three dominant views regarding the famous Genesis 6 passage about the “Sons of God.” Most Bible interpreters and commentators state that the godly children of Seth are the Sons of God marrying outside the faith, or that fallen angels mated with human women to produce giant offspring. The scientific expl anation of these events is still in the works. See also album 114 .
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 520: Kuinka lainata: ”Egyptin 10 vitsausta”. Osoitteessa: Merkityksia.fi. Saatavilla osoitteessa: plagas-de-egipto/">https://merkityksia.fi/10-pl agas-de-egipto/ .
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 570: Netflix’s Bodies: Is Longharvest Lane a real pl ace?
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 35: Memoria de mis cojones tristes play:none">Valkoisia valeita
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 56: Un viejo periodista Decision festejar sus noventa años a lo grande, dándose un regalo que le hará sentir que todavía está vivo: una jovencita. En el prostíbulo de un pintoresco pueblo, ve a la jovencita de espaldas, compl etamente desnuda, y su vida cambia radicalmente. Ahora que la conoce se encuentra a punto de morir, pero no por viejo, sino de amor.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 123: ploads/2018/03/Kalanick-1200x675-768x432.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 149: ploads/2020/07/Helvi-Juvonen.jpg?x33869" />
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 165: T.S. Eliot was the poet who perhaps had a permanent pl ace in Kai’s personal literary cosmos – he introduced Eliot’s poetry to Finnish readership in the late 1940s. This passage, from Little Gidding, might well serve as his epitaph.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 167: ….We shall not cease from expl oration
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 168: And the end of all our expl oring
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 236: Hemingway's preoccupation with violence dominated his life. Tässä se nähtiin taas. He won the Nobel prize of literature in 1945. Figures. Big game hunting, deep sea fishing, military expl oits, physical prowess, heavy boozing. Ilmiselvä homo.Tästä aiheesta on paljon paasausta ennestäänkin. Old man and the Seagram.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 245: 2. In A Farewell to Arms there is this celebrated passage. "There were many words that you could not stand to hear and finally only the names of pl aces had dignity. Certain numbers were the same way and certain dates and these with the names of the pl aces were all you could say and have them mean anything. Abstract words such as glory, honor, courage, or hallow were obscene beside the concrete names of villages, the numbers of roads, the names of rivers, the numbers of regiments and the dates."
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 251: only in living, not in abstractions, and concrete pl aces and peopl e are meaningful because we determine ourselves in relation to the things around us. Glory, honor, courage and sanctity are conceptions of a "compl icated" ethics.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 253: Sartre has said that the writer's is to cure the "sick" language that is incommunicative. Iris Murdoch, in attempting to answer what the sickness of the language really is, says it is the fact that we can no longer take language for granted as a medium of communication. "Its transparancy has gone. We are like peopl e who for a long time looked out of a window without noticing the glass - and then one day began to notice this too. Hemingway also feals this way. Our time demands a simpl e prose. with an Eliot-like emphasis on semantics."
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 261: Mandel takes a brief reference to an anticlerical novel made by one of the characters in A Farewell to Arms and expl ores the historical and ideological basis for its presence in the novel. In a novel where the Priest is such an important figure, the discussion of the Catholic Church and the way that soldiers would regard religion becomes an important thematic examination. Mandel traces her expl oration of this topic, the translation of this obscure novel, and her subsequent revelations, in a way that makes this chapter a study in scholarship and the excavation of an arcane reference.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 271: In 1907, Notari (1878–1950) was already a best-selling journalist, polemicist, biographer, novelist, and dramatist. All told, he would write more than thirty books, in six of which he examines the position of women in society, most notably with a 1903 exegesis of prostitution in high and low pl aces called Signore sole: Interviste con le più belle e le più celebri artiste (Single women: Interviews with the most beautiful and famous artists) that sold 21,000 copies and was denounced as immoral and obscene and taken to court, which inevitably increased its readership. It was followed by Quelle signore: Scene di una grande città moderna (Those women: Scenes of a great modern city; ca. 1904), which was set in a house of prostitution and whose main character, Ellere, was recognizably based on Notari’s good friend Filippo Tommaso Marinetti (1876–1944), an Egyptian-born Italian poet, editor, firebrand, and founder of the Futurist movement.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 281: Indeed, as Rinaldi claims, The Black Pig “tells you about those priests” (FTA 8). And it is easy enough to see why the priest thought it “a filthy and vile book.” But Rinaldi’s compl aint, that it “shook my faith” (7), needs to be read in the context of everything else we know of this character. If Rinaldi is a real believer—which I doubt—he would disdain Notari’s book, which, although heavily documented, is dripping with scorn, irony, and bias. But if his faith is automatic and largely irrelevant, or if it has already been shaken, he might have read on, attracted by Notari’s wide reading, his witty, strong prose, and his relentlessly rationalist logic, sometimes reminiscent of MarkTwain.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 374: In the appendix, each location is carefully catalogued with notes as to pl acement, location of the sundial, and maker(s) if known. McLemore’s observation that they’re “all sad like that” is hard to argue with: there are a lot of ways to say “remember you will die,” “time is fleeting,” and “seize the day,” and many of them are in Gatty’s book. The motto that S-Town host Brian Reed1 finds in a mission garden, knowing to look for it because John told him to, does not appear there, but does in another: “Nil boni hodie diam perdidi: I did nothing good today — the day is lost.”
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 415: 1 S-Town was an American investigative journalism podcast hosted by Brian Reed and created by the producers of Serial and This American Life. In 2012, horologist John B. McLemore sent an email to the staff of the show This American Life asking them to investigate an alleged murder in his hometown of Woodstock, Alabama, a pl ace he claimed to despise. There wasn't any.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 429: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 550: Maimonides kirjoitti The Guide for the Perpl exedissä, että "Jumala on tietoisesti siirtänyt juutalaiset pois uhrauksista rukoukseen, koska rukous on palvonnan korkeampi muoto". Kuitenkin juutalaisessa laissa, Mishneh Torah, hän sanoo, että eläinten uhraukset jatkuvat kolmannessa temppelissä, ja kertoo kuinka ne suoritetaan. Jotkut [ kuka? ] uskovat rabbi Abraham Isaac Kookin näkemyksen, että eläinuhreja ei palauteta. Näitä temppelipalvelusta koskevia näkemyksiä tulkitaan toisinaan väärin (esimerkiksi Olat Raiyahissa, jossa on kommentoitu Malakian profetiaa ("Sitten Juudan ja Jerusalemin viljauhri on Jumalalle otollinen niin kuin muinoin ja entisinä vuosina " [Malakia 3:4]), Kook osoittaa, että vain viljauhreja tarjotaan palautetussa temppelipalvelussa, kun taas asiaan liittyvässä Igrot HaRaiyahin esseessä hän ehdottaa muuta.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 587: The Community of Christ, Myöhempien aikojen pyhien liikkeen toiseksi suurin kirkkokunta, on toiminut Independencessä, Missourissa vuodesta 1994 lähtien yleisölle avoimena temppelinä. Toinen MAP-liikkeen kirkkokunta, Kristuksen kirkko (Templ e Lot), omistaa tontin Templ e Lot, todellisen paikan, jolle temppeli rakennetaan.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 35: Tule käteeni play:none">Päänavauxia
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 65: ploads/2022/06/pafos-seminaari-366-e1655203858968.jpg?resize=768%2C590&ssl=1" />
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 77: Appl ied Psychology Positive Psychology Life Coaching Teamwork Team Leadership Customer Service Literature Research Commercial Aviation Mindfulness Microsoft Office English Microsoft Excel Social Media Public Speaking Microsoft Word PowerPoint Sales First Aid Secretarial Skills Change Management. Learning has been my lifelong passion. Live and learn. Focus of my interest is on human existence, communication and co-operation. I have studied psychology, social psychology, appl ied psychology and leadership as well as contemporary litterature and female studies. Real life experience on these themes I have gathered while working as a flight attendant and purser. In the future I want to to contribute to well being both in private as well as professional sectors of life.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 79: Julkaisu: pland.fi/bitstream/handle/10024/60945/Kaihua.Anne.pdf?sequence=2">Toivon johtaminen esimiesten kokemana. Lapl and University Dec 2013.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 141: Jacques Derrida était le troisième fils d’Aimé Derrida, juif d'origine séfarade, et de Georgette Sultana Esther Safar, issue d'une famille juive d'Algérie dont les ancêtres établis depuis pl usieurs générations dans ce pays. Isä Aaron Prosper Charles ( "Aimé") Derrida (1896–1970) työskenteli koko ikänsä viini- ja väkeviä alkoholijuomia valmistava yrityxessä Tachet, myös matkustavana myyjänä (hänen poikansa mielestä työ oli "uuvuttavaa" ja "nöyryyttävää", hänen isänsä pakotettiin olemaan "kuuliainen työntekijä" siinä määrin, että hän heräsi aikaisin tehdäkseen kirjanpidon ruokapöydässä).
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 143: Jotkut raportit osoittavat, että hänet nimettiin Jackie amerikkalaisen lapsinäyttelijän Jackie Cooganin mukaan, joka oli tullut tunnetuksi ympäri maailmaa roolistaan vuoden 1921 Charlie Chapl inin elokuvassa The Kid.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 164: Hänen filosofiansa professori Étienne Borne havaitsi, että hänen väitöskirjansa olivat "pl otinilaisia". Hän astui - kahden epäonnistumisen jälkeen - École Normale Supérieure -kouluun Pariisissa vuonna 1952. Siellä hän tapasi Louis Althusserin, joka oli silloin apulaisvalmentaja. Derrida kampanjoi äärivasemmistoryhmissä ilman kommunismia. Eihän siitä mitään tullut niillä eväillä.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 168: Trần Đức Thảo était un Vietnamien qui commencait comme husserlien, mais ensuite proposa une genèse matérialiste de la conscience humaine à partir de la matière (en passant par les divers stades intermédiaires de l'évolution), avant de faire un exposé du fonctionnement de la dialectique matérialiste dans le cadre des sociétés humaines. Bien qu'écrit très rapidement pour pouvoir rentrer au pl us tôt au Viêt Nam, l'ouvrage exercait une certaine fascination sur toute une génération intellectuelle française, (Louis Althusser, Jacques Derrida, Pierre Bourdieu, Paul Ricœur).
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 189: Koko filosofinen perinne perustuu mielivaltaisiin kaksijakoisiin kategorioihin (kuten pyhä/profaani, merkitsejä/merkitty, mieli/keho ) ja että mikä tahansa teksti sisältää impl isiittisiä hierarkioita, "joilla todellisuudessa määrätään järjestys ja joilla harjoitetaan hienovaraista tukahduttamista, koska nämä hierarkiat sulkevat pois, alistavat ja piilottavat erilaiset mahdolliset merkitykset." Derrida viittaa menetelmäänsä näiden kaksijakoisuuden paljastamiseksi ja hämmentämiseksi länsimaisen kulttuurin purkamisena.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 195: Siten différance on "käsittelemätön käsite", joka pakenee kaikkia tiedon luokkia, mutta löytyy niiden lähteestä, sillä tavalla, jolla mystiikan jumala tai uuspl atoninen jumala on sanoinkuvaamaton, koska "olemisen tuolla puolen". No justiinsa juu. Derridalla on vaikean kirjoittajan maine, joka on vaativa lukijaltaan, jopa filosofeilta. Hänen tyylinsä on tiivis, hän käyttää lukuisia sanaleikkejä ja pitää hämäristä viittauksista. Sen lukeminen, joka on usein hämmentävää ja vaatii lukuisia uudelleenlukuja, paljastaa avauksia filosofian tulevaisuudesta, jos siltä alkaa tuntua. Tai sitten ei. Jäbä pitäisi työntää takas sinne ja dekonstruoida uudestaan.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 338: Non pl us à quoi? myöskään tiedä mitä varten?
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 377: Wasf on arabien runogenre, alongside 'the boast (fakhr), the invective (hijaa’), and the elegy (marthiya)'. In waṣf love poems, each part of a lover's body is described and praised in turn, often using exotic, extravagant, or even far-fetched metaphors. The Song of Solomon is a prominent exampl e of such a poem, and other exampl es can be found in Thousand and One Nights. The images given in this type of poetry are not literally descriptive. Instead, they convey the delight of the lover for the beloved, where the lover finds freshness and spl endor in the body as a reflected image in the world. Hilvik ei perustanut metaforista, se käytti vertauxia mieluummin.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 396: Hänen tunnetuimpia teoksiaan oli kriittinen teos Against Interpretation (1966). Susan pl agioi sana sanalta jotain toista 1-lahkeista ja ohitti sen postmodernistisella hypnoottisella liikkeellä:
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 404: Jos Amerikka on länsimaisen valkoisen sivilisaation huipentuma, kuten kaikki vasemmistosta oikeistoon julistavat, niin länsimaisessa valkoisessa sivilisaatiossa täytyy olla jotain pahasti vialla. Tämä on tuskallinen totuus; harvat meistä haluavat mennä niin pitkälle... Totuus on, että Mozart, Pascal, Boolen algebra, Shakespeare, parlamentaarinen hallitus, barokkikirkot, Newton, naisten vapautuminen, Kant, Marx, Balanchine-baletit jne. eivät lunasta sitä, mitä tämä tietty sivilisaatio on saanut aikaan maailmalle. Valkoinen rotu on ihmiskunnan historian syöpä; se on valkoinen rotu ja se yksin - sen ideologiat ja keksinnöt - joka hävittää autonomiset sivilisaatiot kaikkialla, missä ne leviävät, mikä on horjuttanut pl aneetan ekologista tasapainoa, mikä nyt uhkaa itse elämän olemassaoloa.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 453: ploads/2022/03/julia-kristeva-portait-with-painting.jpg" width="60%" />
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 488: 26. tammikuuta 1977, Sollers allekirjoitti Le Mondessa – hän pl us noin viisikymmentä persoonaa – (erityisesti Jean-Paul Sartren, Roland Barthesin, Simone de Beauvoirin, Alain Robbe-Grillet'n, Françoise Doltin ja Jacques Derridan kanssa) "Avoimen kirjeen rikoslain tarkistuskomissiolle tiettyjen lakitekstien tarkistamiseksi, aikuiset ja alaikäiset", jossa vaaditaan, että "alaikäisten väärinkäyttöä" koskevat lain artiklat "kumotaan tai muutetaan perusteellisesti" siinä mielessä, että "lapsen ja nuoren oikeus tunnustetaan ylläpitää suhteita valitsemiinsa ihmisiin." Se oli vetoomus kolmen miehen puolesta, joita syytettiin 15-vuotiaiden alaikäisten sopimattomasta pahoinpitelystä ilman väkivaltaa. Tämän tekstin oli kirjoittanut Gabriel Matzneff, joka ei salaa makuaan pedofiliaa ja efebofiliaa kohtaan. Matzneff kerskui nussineensa useitakin alaikäisiä tyttöjä. Helmikuussa 2020 julkaistussa New York Timesin profiilissa valokuvassa Matzneff seisoo yksin veden äärellä Italiassa, näyttää masentuneelta, surullinen kalju mies Burberryn trenssitakissa. Ämmä Springora tuhosi muiston siitä, mitä hän muistaa olleen "kestävä ja upea rakkaustarina". Mutta voiko teini-ikäisellä tytöllä olla "upea rakkaustarina" yli kolme kertaa häntä ikäisemmän henkilön kanssa? Tämä on Consentin ytimessä oleva kysymys. Lukijat eivät epäile vastauksesta mitään. This manner willl be convenient for a man who wants to enjoy a woman, and can only get at her by force and against her will. (Perfumed Garden, p. 72.)
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 496: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 660: Mitä tulee eurooppalaiseen identiteettiin, tämä runollinen muisto muistuttaa, että nykyisestä kyvyttömyydestämme ja menneistä tai nykyisistä rikoksistamme huolimatta olemme sivilisaatio, kenties ainoa, jossa identiteetti ei ole kultti, vaan iso kysymysmerkki. Olemme parhaita, oikeastaan olemme ainoita hyvixiä! Ja jossa tällainen ilta on mahdollinen, jossa runous kohtaa nihilismin ja transsendenssin, "vähiten pahimman" politiikan ja pyhän barbaarisuuden. Kun twiitit, sosiaaliset verkostot tai itse ahdistus eivät merkitse sinulle mitään, kun sinulla ei ole enää mitään sanottavaa – etsi "suuria ääniä": runoja, romaaneja, teattereita, elokuvateattereita, konsertteja. Lue mun pl okia . Minä kyllä pidän sinusta. Ja kuulen paremmin Davidin ja Souadin hauraan vapinan.
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 35: AVAUTUA SOLMUUN play:none">Päänauontaa
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 129: Establishing herself as an exempl ary student in her
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 147: ploads/2017/11/Pia-Muehlenbeck.09-768x868.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 151: “Peopl e get a little surprised when I tell them I was
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 166: Silentium! Tacete pueri! huusi Omppu kun pojat hälisivät latinan tunnilla. Jos se ei auttanut, tuli komento Älkää LÖPISKÖ! Saman olisi voinut huutaa Platon varhaiskristillisen ajan jäljittelijälle Plötinöxelle. Plätystä oli kulunut puoli vuosituhatta, joten pl öpisijä oli eräänlainen uustomisti.
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 183: plotinus.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 188: Enneadilla tarkoitetaan muinaisen Egyptin jumalryhmää. Nimitys tulee kreikankielisestä sanasta, joka tarkoittaa yhdeksää. Muinaisegyptiläiset käyttivät jumalryhmästä nimeä Pesed-jet. Jumalryhmässä saattoi nimestä huolimatta olla joko enemmän tai vähemmän kuin yhdeksän jumalaa pl us maalivahti. Jokaisella tärkeällä uskonnollisella keskuksella oli oma enneadinsa. Yksi kuuluisimmista enneadeista on Heliopoliin kaupungissa (muinaisegyptinkieliseltä nimeltään Iunu) vallalla ollut jumalyhdeksikkö. Siihen kuuluivat luolajumala Atum, hänen poikansa Shoe ja tyttärensä Tefnut, Shun ja Tefnutin avioliitosta syntynyt poika Geb ja tytär Nut sekä Gebin ja Nutin avioliitosta syntyneet kaksi poikaa Osiris ja Seth ja kaksi tytärtä Isis ja Neftys. Osirixen ja Isixen nimeen, olet kana!
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 190: Platon oli perseestä mutta uuspl atonismi tupl a perseestä. Enneadit (kreikaksi: Ἐννεάδες), kokonaan The Six Enneadia [mitvit? Eikö niitä pitäisi olla 9?] on filosofi Plötinöksen kirjoitusten kokoelma, jonka on toimittanut ja koonnut hänen oppilaansa Porfyrius (noin 270 jKr.). Plotinus oli Ammonius Saccasin oppilas ja yhdessä he perustivat uuspl atonismin. Hänen työnsä Augustinuksen Hippolaisen, kappadokialaisten isien, Pseudo-Dionysius Areopagiitin ja useiden myöhempien kristittyjen ja muslimiajattelijoiden kautta on vaikuttanut suuresti länsimaiseen ja lähi-idän ajatteluun.
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 319: Otetaan ensin kehon ja sielun yhdistelmä. Kuinka voisi kärsiä, esimerkiksi istua tässä Coupl ementissa?
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 352: Ja näiden ihannemuotojen avulla, joiden avulla sielu käyttää sinkkua herraus elävien yli, meillä on diskursiivista päättelyä, aistitietoa ja älykkyys. Tästä hetkestä lähtien meillä on erikoisesti Me: ennen tätä siellä oli vain "meidän"; mutta tässä vaiheessa seisoo ME [aito Human-Principl e] ylevästi tanassa Animaten puheenjohtajana. (Kyl tääkin on aika maskuliinista pohdiskelua.)
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 380: Mutta on havaittu, että myös Coupl ement- varsinkin ennen meidän emansipaatioon tämän koko Me, ja itse asiassa mitä kehon jäsen kokemuksia sanomme koemme. Tämä kattaa sitten kaksi erilaista käsitettä; joskus se sisältää raa'an osan, joskus se ylittää raa'an osan. Keho iljettävine kyrpineen on raa'asti kosketettu elämään; todellinen mies on toinen, joka on puhdas kehosta, joka on syntyperäisesti varustettu älylliseen toimintaan kuuluvilla hyveillä, hyveet, joiden istuin on erillinen sielu, sielu, joka jopa asuu täällä voidaan pitää erillään. [Tämä sielu muodostaa ihmisen] milloin se on kokonaan vetänyt pois sen toisen sielun, joka on säteily [tai emanaatio] siitä myös vetäytyy, vedettynä sen jälkeen.
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 424: The ancient poets animated all sensible objects with Gods or Geniuses, calling them by the names and adorning them with properties of woods, rivers, mountains, lakes, cities, nations, and whatever their enlarged and numerous senses could perceive. And particularly they studied the Genius of each city and country, pl acing it under its mental deity. Till a system was formed, which some took advantage of and enslaved the vulgar by attempting to realize or abstract the mental deities from their objects. Thus began Priesthood. Priests are like worms, they shit on the nicest leaves. Choosing forms of worship from poetic tales. And at length they pronounced that the Gods had ordered such things. Thus men forgot that all deities reside in the human breast.
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 432: None of the rustic island-peopl e know:
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 449: Tuolloin Shelleyllä oli myös intensiivinen pl atoninen suhde Elizabeth Hitchenerin, 28-vuotiaan naimattoman edistyneiden näkemysten opettajan, kanssa, jonka kanssa hän oli ollut kirjeenvaihdossa. Hitcheneristä, jota Shelley kutsui "sieluni sisareksi" ja "toiseksi itseksini", tuli hänen uskottunsa ja älyllinen kumppaninsa, kun hän kehitti näkemyksiään politiikasta, uskonnosta, etiikasta ja henkilökohtaisista suhteista. Shelley ehdotti, että hän liittyisi hänen, Harrietin ja Elizan kanssa yhteiseen talouteen, jossa kaikki on yhteistä kuin eväät uskovaisilla.
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 36: HALOT play:none">Peukutusta
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 60: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 265: Siitinelämä ei ole muuta elämää kummempaa, sekin on vaan aktiviteetti, siis izetarkoitus. Tämä on Eevan opetus, pl us se, ettei päämäärä ole tärkeää vaan liike (Bernstein). Liike-elämäkin menee aina vaan eteenpäin, optimistisesti kohti luovaa tuhoa. Just niinkö existentialismi on talousliberalismin filosofia, tää Eevan etiikka on lisääntymättömyyteen ja keskinäiseen runkkauxeen tyytyväisen laissez faire neoproletaarin yxinyrittäjän etiikka. Pääasia on että rakastavaiset tulevat myös ize jatkuvasti. Näin on rakkaus taas valjastettu markkinoiden palveluxeen, mutta tällä kertaa vapaiden. Miten huima, haasteellinen tie!
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 286: pload/ar_0.75,c_fill,g_faces,h_1600,w_1200/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/v1688975067/39-8030516093ce69e4806" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 302: pload/ar_1.5804949053857351,c_fill,g_faces,h_759,w_1200/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/v1691146182/39-115199764ccd790908ed" width="40%" />
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 308: Brittitutkija Alice Evans kirjoittaa, että moni nuori nainen on somekupl assa, joka tekee näkyväksi ensisijaisesti yhteiskunnan eriarvoisuuksia.
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 309: – Voin hyvin kuvitella, että monella naisella, joka lukee mediasta miesten koventuneista kyrvistä ja hyvin konservatiivisista arvoista, herää vastareaktio, ja ajattelu kääntyy liberaalimmaksi, Rasmus sanoo. Vika on siis taas juurikin naisissa, mitäs kimittävät kupl a kurkussa.
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 311: pload/ar_1.5,c_fill,g_faces,h_800,w_1200/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/v1707224035/39-123913465c22bafd7305" width="60%" />
xxx/ellauri361.html on line 35: Ylösnousemus play:none">Profetioita
xxx/ellauri361.html on line 48: Paxu Lexa eli Leo Tolstoi (kz. albumia 137 ) kertoo omista kokemuxistaan teoxessa Ylösnousemus, jossa ylimystöperheen nuoriherra panee kotikartanolla piikatytön paxuxi ja antaa tälle sata rupl aa vaivan palkaxi lähtiessään taas yliopistoon opiskelemaan.
xxx/ellauri361.html on line 50: Pieni tyttö meni huoneeseensa ja otti piilostaan esiin lasipurkin. Hän kaatoi siinä olevat pikkurahat lattialle ja laski ne moneen kertaan. Siinä oli 27 rupl aa ize ansaittuja ja 100 rupl aa viettelijältä saatuja.
xxx/ellauri361.html on line 58: ploads/2017/01/reijotelaranta.jpg" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri361.html on line 184: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri361.html on line 195: Nehljudov astuu asepalvelukseen, mikä Tolstoin maailmankatsomuksen mukaan " turmelee ihmisiä". Mentyään kaupunkiin ja turmelluttuaan juomisen ja uhkapelaamisen seurauksena hän kuitenkin palaa kaksi vuotta myöhemmin tätiensä tilalle ja hyökkää sisään Katyushaan seksuaalisesti ja jättää tämän raskaaksi. Ja niin, jo sellainen mies, matkalla rykmenttiin, hän pysähtyy kylään tapaamaan tätejään, missä hän viettelee häneen rakastuneen Katyushan, ja viimeisenä päivänä ennen lähtöä tönäisee satasen rupl asetelin häneen, lohduttaen itseään sillä, että "kaikki tekevät näin". Poistuttuaan armeijasta varttiluutnanttina, Nehljudov asettuu Moskovaan, missä hän viettää tylsän esteetin, hienostuneen egoistin toimettomana elämää, joka rakastaa vain omaa nautintoa (mutta pelkää naisia).
xxx/ellauri361.html on line 199: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/3/37/Tolsoy-Res-Awake_008.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri361.html on line 222: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/cb/Brian_Aldiss_2005.JPG/300px-Brian_Aldiss_2005.JPG" />
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 33: ROTU JA ENNAKKOLUULO play:none">Xenofobiaa
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 54: Nuoret metrosexuaalit miehet eivät kilpaile autoilla eikä taloilla vaan ulkonäöllä. Ei ylläri, sillä koppelot työllistyvät paremmin ja voivat pl okata mieleisensä mezokukon. Mikkihiiret homofobiaa tunne ei, hiuli hei. Valkaistuja kääriäisiä philadelphialaisilla nyhtösämpylöillä olkaa hyvät.
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 73: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/71/Wassili_Lepanto_%28links%29_und_Hans-Georg_Gadamer_im_Gespr%C3%A4ch_-_DC260-mh15922.jpg/1200px-Wassili_Lepanto_%28links%29_und_Hans-Georg_Gadamer_im_Gespr%C3%A4ch_-_DC260-mh15922.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 80: Nazi-Heideggerin vaikutuksesta Gadamer irtautui Jakkoh-Hintikan uuskantilaisuudesta. Kantilaiset on idealistiagnostikkoja: voi tuolla joku todellisuus olla takana muttei siitä saada tietoa, kun oma pää on edessä. Heideggerille tekemänsä habilitaatioväitöskirjan Interpretation des Platonischen Philebos hyväksymisen jälkeen Gadamer nimitettiin vuonna 1929 Privatdozentiksi Marburgin yliopistoon. Vuonna 1939 hän sai ensimmäisen filosofian professuurinsa Leipzigin yliopistosta. Filebos on huumoritonta vanhuspl atonismia siitä onko kivempi syödä sängyssä struudeleita vaiko pohtia. Hannu-Jori on Platon kanssa yhtä mieltä että vähän pitää olla kumpaakin. Mukavinta on järjestää fellow hermeneuttien kaa truth happeningeja nauttien kauniista taide-elämyxistä.
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 140: ploads/2017/06/Hannes_Sjoblom_ja_Erland_Sihvonen_Kiinassa_lores.jpeg" />
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 512: vajaamielinen. Oma vika pikku sika vaikka kotiolot olisivat kuinka kamalat. Kristinuskon omaxuma pl atoninen dualismi nostaa tässä rumaa päätänsä. Tunnottoman psykopaatin syyntakeettomaksi toteaminen ja lyhennettyyn vapausrangaistukseen tuomitseminen on väärä tie. Ymmärrystä vailla olevalta
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 549: ilmapiiriin pl asebon tavoin ja sai vankipotilaat korjaamaan käytöstään, jolloin hoidon ja
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 651: palkitsemisen ja rankaisemisen järjestelmää, joka muotoutuu vasta käytännössä potkuista ja päänsilityxistä. Pääpoinzixi jää foucaultilaisest että negatiivinen pakko pyrittiin suljetussa laitoksessa muuttamaan potilaan ja vangin luonnolliseksi tilasuhteeksi. Rikollisen ja mielisairaan paikka oli suljetussa, yhteisön moraalitajuun nojaavassa laitoksessa, tosin lattiatasolla. Handen seinäpiirroxia peittäviin pl exeihin on ilmestynyt uusi kerros graffiteja, ei yhtä hienoja mutta puhuvampia.
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 682: During his youthful visits to Bowood House, the country seat of his patron Lord Lansdowne, he had passed his time at falling unsuccessfully in love with all the ladies of the house, whom he courted with a clumsy jocularity, while pl aying chess with them or giving them lessons on the harpsichord. Hopeful to the last, at the age of eighty he wrote again to one of them, recalling to her memory the far-off days when she had "presented him, in ceremony, with the flower in the green lane".
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 698: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d6/Jeremy_Bentham_Auto-Icon_2020.jpg/340px-Jeremy_Bentham_Auto-Icon_2020.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 719: Dilthey ilmoitti jo vuonna 1860 aikovansa kirjoittaa uuden puhtaan järjen kritiikin, joka perustuisi historiallis-kielitieteellisen osaston maailmankatsomukselle. Transufilosofia säilyi Diltheyn käsitteellisenä viitekehyksenä läpi hänen filosofisen uransa, ei se siitä päässyt eroon enempää kuin rupikonna täpl istä. Hänen filosofinen projektinsa kesti yli viisikymmentä vuotta, mutta mitään valmista historiallisen järjen kritiikistä hän ei saanut kirjoitetuksi. Sen sijaan historiallisen järjen kritiikki on luettavissa erilaisine kehittelyvaiheineen siinä mittavassa tuotannossa erilaisia tekeleitä, jotka hän elämänsä aikana kirjoitti. Diltheyn filosofista tuotantoa tarkasteltaessa on hyvä muistaa hänen ajatelleen – Karl Marxia mukaillen – että filosofian tehtävä ei ole selittää maailmaa vaan muuttaa sitä. No paljonpa se sai sitä muutetuxi. Tämän toiminnallisen lähtökohdan kautta myös hänen filosofinen hajanaisuutensa tulee parhaiten ymmärretyksi.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 35: HERRA HUU play:none">Pedofiliaa
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 75: Lapin Nato-harjoituksen lisäksi myös koko eteläisessä Suomessa harjoitellaan. Puolustusvoimat, reserviläiset ja viranomaiset kehittävät paikallisen tason varautumista paikallispyllistysharjoituksessa. Jokainen varaa paljon pahaa vettä kertakäyttömuovipulloissa pl us lyhyitä makaroneja kuukauden mittaisen ydinsodan varalle.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 93: pl an to kill a person in a foreign country, viz. Lars Vilks.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 134: Fossiilisten polttoaineiden johtajat ketkä katsovat pl aneetan palamista, kun heidän voittonsa kasvavat.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 160: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/4/47/Muh-hund-original-rondellliten.JPG" />
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 172: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/4/4b/Muh-hund-originallit.JPG" />
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 203: ploads/2023/02/lofving-2.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 250: ploads/2022/08/Micael_Byde%CC%81n_Lo%CC%88fving_Linda_Stor1.jpg.webp" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 291: Amerikanskij torgovlj -niminen yritys perustettiin New Yorkissa 27. toukokuuta 1924 (eli ennen Yhdysvaltojen ja Neuvostoliiton dipl omaattisten suhteiden solmimista) yksityiseksi osakeyhtiöksi, johon osallistui Neuvostoliiton pääomaa Neuvostoliiton hallituksen sulautumisen seurauksena sen määräysvallassa olevat kauppayhtiöt ARCOS (ARCOS) ja Products Exchange Corporation (Products Exchange Corporation). Muodollisesti tärkeimmät osakkeenomistajat olivat Vneshtorgbank, Tsentrosojuz ja jopa yhtiön Neuvostoliiton johtajat. Ulkomaankaupan järjestämisen lisäksi Amtorg toimi INO OGPU:n agenttien suojana. Amtorgin työ oli erityisen tärkeää vuosia ennen kuin Yhdysvallat tunnusti Neuvostoliiton, sillä Neuvostoliiton suurlähetystö Yhdysvalloissa avattiin vasta presidentti Franklin D. Rooseveltin johdolla vuonna 1933, sen jälkeen kun Yhdysvallat oli tunnustanut Neuvostoliiton virallisesti dipl omaattisesti.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 296: Amtorgin perustaminen ja myöhempi toiminta tuli mahdolliseksi Yhdysvaltain hallituksen virallisen kannan vuoksi - se ei tunnustanut Neuvosto-Venäjää dipl omaattisesti eikä kehittänyt kauppa- ja taloussuhteita sen kanssa virallisella tasolla, eikä samalla estänyt yksityisiä amerikkalaisia. yritykset, jotka osoittavat kiinnostusta kauppa-taloudellisten suhteiden luomiseen Neuvostoliiton kauppa- ja teollisuusjärjestöjen ja osastojen kanssa. Amerikan viranomaisten antamat lait ja määräykset mahdollistivat kauppa- ja talousasioihin osallistuvien Neuvostoliiton virkamiesten saapumisen Yhdysvaltoihin asumaan ilman erityisiä rajoituksia. Yksityiset amerikkalaiset yrittäjät ja asiantuntijat saivat matkustaa Neuvosto-Venäjälle ja asua siellä sillä ehdolla, että Yhdysvaltain hallitus ei ole vastuussa, jos heillä on vaikeuksia Neuvostoliiton viranomaisten kanssa eikä pystyisi tarjoamaan heille mitään apua tällaisissa tilanteissa.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 305: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/ae/Santeri_Nuorteva%2C_L._Martins_1920.jpg/400px-Santeri_Nuorteva%2C_L._Martins_1920.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 323: Helmikuussa 1918 hän suostui tulemaan Suomen "punaisen" hallituksen täysivaltaiseksi edustajaksi, mutta hänen tehtävänsä epäonnistui: hän ei saanut tapaamista Yhdysvaltain ulkoministeriöön. Tehtävien suorittamista varten hän perusti toimiston Suomalaisen Tiedonantotoimiston. Syyskuussa 1918 hän jakoi pamfletin Avoin kirje amerikkalaisille työläisille Suomen Työväentasavallan edustajana , jonka propagandateemat heijastavat enemmän Neuvosto-Venäjän näkökulmaa. Esimerkiksi Tšekkoslovakian joukkojen kapinaan kiinnitettiin enemmän huomiota kuin nyt lakkautetun "punaisen" hallituksen etuihin. Suurelta osin Nuortevin pamfletien ansiosta termi "Suomen Neuvostoliiton sosialistinen työväentasavalta" juurtui englanninkielisiin lähteisiin, kun taas Suomessa itse "punaiset" eivät sitä käyttäneet. Pian Nuortevin päätoiminta siirtyi täysin puolustamaan lokakuun vallankumousta ja sen propagandaa Yhdysvalloissa. Julkaisi "Neuvosto-Venäjä" -lehden. Maaliskuussa 1919 Neuvostoliiton hallitus nimitti Ludwig Martensin New Yorkin Neuvostoliiton toimiston johtajaksi . Nuortevasta tuli hänen sihteerinsä, jonka tehtäviin kuuluivat suhdetoiminta ja dipl omaattinen toiminta. Neuvosto-Venäjä pyrki luomaan kauppasuhteita Yhdysvaltoihin, ja Nuortevilla oli tärkeä rooli.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 389: Pilots doing what they pl ease,
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 408: Shooting peasants pl anting rice,
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 467: Take some pictures as you spl it,
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 30: JAG, OLLE OCH PENSÉ play:none">Muistolaattoja
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 49: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 55: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 60: Tän niteen pitäisi olla Hassen niteistä omaelämäkerrallisin. Sen perusteella Hasse Vigg vaikuttaa hizin epämiellyttävältä, kylmiöltä häiskältä. En 13-14 årig blandblodig jänta som hade läckra former och ett inkört luders ansikte. Tässäkään nopeassa mustalaistyttöskississä (aka croquis) ei nähty 1968 mitään moraalitonta. Kesällä '48 Hasse pl umpsahti 12-vuotiaana siniseen maalisammioon ja siitä tuli tuollainen, ilkeä.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 98: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/5d/Francois-Truffaut-Finlande-1964.jpg/440px-Francois-Truffaut-Finlande-1964.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 99: ploads/2021/07/AP5701010901-640x400.jpeg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 109: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 115: Lausunnon antanut kriitikko Christgau on ize todennäköisesti tuhkamuna. CNN: n vanhempi kirjailija Jamie Allen on kutsunut Christgauta " musiikkimaailman EF Huttoniksi – kun hän puhuu, ihmiset kuuntelevat." Who the heck is EF Hutton? In the 1970s and 1980s, a trademark of the commercials was a crowd of peopl e suddenly falling quiet and listening whenever E.F Hutton was mentioned. The tagline "When E.F Hutton Talks, Peopl e Listen" would close the commercial. EF Hutton oli suuren luokan Wall Street huijari 1987 crashin aikoihin, jolloin Christchurch adoptoi Nicaraguasta tyttären.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 120: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/1e/Al_Green_in_Washington_D.C_%28cropped%29.jpg/440px-Al_Green_in_Washington_D.C_%28cropped%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 137: Al Green Expl ores Your Mind (1974)
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 165: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 219: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/b8/Anton_Goremyka_1919_cover.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 227: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/78/Russian_writers_by_Levitsky_1856.jpg/480px-Russian_writers_by_Levitsky_1856.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 274: Mauprat est un roman historique publié en 1837. L'histoire se déroule pour la majeure partie dans le Berry à l'aube de la Révolution française au XVIIIe siècle. Il relate l'histoire d'un jeune garçon issu d'une famille de seigneurs cruels, les Mauprat, qui échappe peu à peu à son lourd héritage familial grâce à l'amour qu'il éprouve pour sa cousine Edmée, nettement pl us civilisée que lui. L'œuvre recèle pl usieurs aspects: si Mauprat est avant tout un roman d'amour et une histoire de famille, c'est aussi un roman politique, une fable philosophique et un manifeste féminin.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 279: L’homme ne naît pas méchant, il ne naît pas bon non pl us, comme l’entend Jean-Jacques Rousseau. L’homme naît avec pl us ou moins de passions, avec pl us ou moins de vigueur pour les satisfaire, avec pl us ou moins d’aptitude pour en tirer un bon parti dans la société.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 281: Au début du roman, Bernard est présenté comme un personnage détestable, un véritable voyou sans scrupules. Il est élevé dans une famille de brigands et est un con. Cependant, au fil de l’histoire, nous assistons à sa transformation profonde, alors qu’il est confronté à l’amour et à la bienveillance de la belle Edmée de Mauprat. Bernard devient ainsi le symbole de la rédemption, luttant contre ses instincts les pl us sombres pour devenir un homme meilleur.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 285: Un véritable chef-d’œuvre de la littérature qui continue de fasciner les lecteurs aujourd’hui. D’autres l’ont critiquée pour sa compl exité narrative et ses personnages peu convaincants. Certains lecteurs, y compris Poline, ont également trouvé que le roman était trop long, avec des passages qui semblaient superflus et qui ralentissaient le rythme de l’histoire.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 287: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/f/f0/Oeuvres_illustr%C3%A9es_de_George_Sand_%281852%29_%2814754377626%29.jpg/440px-Oeuvres_illustr%C3%A9es_de_George_Sand_%281852%29_%2814754377626%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 340: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7d/BorisGleb.jpg/360px-BorisGleb.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 346: Varjagisoutajista on myös valtakunta saanut nimensä Rus, Ruotsi ja myöhemmin Russia. Nestorin kronikan mukaan alueen slaavilaiset ja suomalais-ugrilaiset heimot lopettivat veron maksun varjageille ja alkoivat hallita itse itseään. Ajauduttuaan keskinäisiin sotiin he kuitenkin kutsuivat kolme varjagiveljestä Rurikin, Sineuksen ja Truvorin hallitsijoikseen vuonna 862. Rurik ryhtyi hallitsemaan Laatokanlinnaa (Aldeigjuborg), Truvor Izborskia ja Sineus Belozerskia (Valkeajärvi, Vologdan alue). Varsin pian kaksi muuta veljestä kuolivat salaperäisesti ja jäljelle jäi Rurik koko Novgorodin hallitsijaksi. Nykyaikainen DNA-tutkimus on osoittanut, että Rurik todennäköisesti kuului itämerensuomalaiseen N1c1-hapl oryhmään. Perhana, kaveri oli persu! Putinisti!
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 387: Aleksandr Sergejevitš Gribojedov (ven. Александр Сергеевич Грибоедов; 15. tammikuuta (J: 4. tammikuuta) 1795 Moskova, Venäjän keisarikunta – 11. helmikuuta (J: 30. tammikuuta) 1829 Persia) oli venäläinen dipl omaatti, näytelmäkirjailija ja säveltäjä.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 395: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/1/1a/Turkmanchay.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 528: Qu’à Priape, on élève un templ e
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 529: Où jour et nuit l’on vous contempl e,
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 584: On ne bande pl us au Ténare,
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 586: Là, mon pl us grand tourment sans doute
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 592: Tu ne vaux pas, ne t’en dépl aise,
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 596: Exempl e qu’à Rome on suivit.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 597: On y vit pl us d’une matrone,
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 614: Vivent les pl aisirs de la couille !
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 621: Ce héros n’est pl us qu’un fouteur.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 635: Par ce pl aisir qu’on nomme abus :
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 637: Sans ce pl aisir, ne seraient pl us.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 656: Quoique pl us gueux qu’un rat d’église,
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 665: Ai-je moins de pl aisirs que vous ?
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 668: Sort, foutu sort, pl ein de rigueur ;
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 686: laukaiset mällin suuriksi kupl iksi,
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 845: Joten tupl aa onnettomuutesi,
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 859: Charles Maurice de Talleyrand-Périgord (2. helmikuuta 1754 – 17. toukokuuta 1838) oli ranskalainen dipl omaatti, joka toimi Ludvig XVI:n alaisuudessa, Ranskan Suuren vallankumouksen, direktoraatin, konsulaatin ja heinäkuun monarkian aikana. Hänet tunnettiin yleisesti vain nimellä Talleyrand. Sano vain Hannixi, balit jäi aidalle. Hänet vihittiin papiksi 1779 ja 1780 hänestä tuli kirkon edustaja hoviin. Tässä tehtävässään hän oli laatimassa kirkon omaisuuden inventaariota 1785 ja puolusti kirkon likaisia oikeuksia. Vuonna 1789 maallisena tunnettu Talleyrand nimitettiin Autunin piispaksi suvun vaikutusvallan ansiosta. Talleyrand kellui joka käänteessä kuin pieruinen paska pinnalle. Se juoni Napoleonia vastaan minkä kerkisi, haukkui sitä Alexanteri I:lle. Napsu nimitti Talleyrandia "paskaksi silkkisukassa" (la merde dans un bas de soie). Talleyrandilla ei ollut laillisia lapsia, mutta suht tuntematon tavis Charles-Joseph de Flahaut tunnustetaan yleisesti hänen pojakseen.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 890: planktownhardware.com/upl oad/46204_-_last_supper.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 898: ploads/posts/2022-03/1648691062_35-kartinkof-club-p-kartinki-smeshnie-garem-36.jpg" height="100%" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 900: pload/c_crop,d_pl aceholder_euli9k,h_1439,w_2560,x_0,y_0/dpr_auto/c_limit,w_1044/f_auto,q_auto/v1492115409/articles/2016/03/13/when-dating-20-women-at-once-was-ok/160312-moss-harems-tease_ehqrdw" height="100%" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 903: ploads/2020/09/7.jpg?resize=1553%2C958&ssl=1" height="100%" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 915: pl/upl oads/2016/06/niewolnica-340x340.jpg" height="100%" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 916: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/c/c6/Stephan_Sedlacek_-_Die_neue_Haremsdame.jpg/800px-Stephan_Sedlacek_-_Die_neue_Haremsdame.jpg" height="100%" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 918: ploads/2016/09/brg223255.jpg" height="100%" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 921: ploads/posts/2023-03/1678457387_chillywilly-club-p-zhan-leon-zherom-bassein-v-gareme-art-joyr-5.jpg" height="100%" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 923: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0f/Konstantin_Makovsky_-_The_Bulgarian_martyresses.jpg/160px-Konstantin_Makovsky_-_The_Bulgarian_martyresses.jpg" height="100%" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 924: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/7/7f/Geromeslavemarket.jpg/800px-Geromeslavemarket.jpg" height="100%" />
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 926: ploads/2020/12/52976_n.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 31: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 32: Pepun hajua play:none">Peppurointia
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 47: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 71:
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 84: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/8/85/Frangipane.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 88: Joillekin taistelijoiden luokille ei kuitenkaan välttämättä myönnetä geneveläistä sotavankiasemaa, ja määritelmä on laajentunut kattamaan yhä useampia taistelijaluokkia ajan myötä. Aiemmin merirosvojen, vakoojien ja frangipaanien pl us sipulirenkaiden teloitus on sallittu, ja sitä on pidetty voimassa olevan kansainvälisen oikeuden mukaan laillisena. Francs-tireurs (termi, joka on peräisin Ranskan ja Preussin sodasta) ovat vihollisen siviilejä tai miliisi, jotka jatkavat taistelua sotivan osapuolen miehittämillä alueilla eivätkä käytä sotilasunivormuja ja joita voidaan siten kutsua sisseiksi, partisaaneiksi, kapinallisixi jne. Monilla sodan jälkeisillä voittajilla, kuten Ranskalla, Puolalla ja Neuvostoliitolla, oli kokemusta siitä, että akseli teloitti vastarintataistelijoita, jos heidät vangittiin. Sota sai heidät varmistamaan, että ainakin heikäläiset syvälle vihollislinjojen taakse jääneet kommandot ja muut erikoisjoukot suojeltaisiin sotavankeina sen sijaan, että ne teloitettaisiin nopeasti, kuten Hitler määräsi vuoden 1942 Commando- käskyllään. Sodan jälkeen tämä oli sotarikos, josta sakut maxoivat päällään Nurembergissä.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 121: But it’s overly reductive to boil Heart of Darkness down to the commonalities it shares with Conrad’s own experiences. It would be useful to examine its elements crucial to the emergence of modernism: for exampl e, Conrad’s use of multipl e narrators; his couching of one narrative within another; the story’s achronological unfolding; and as would become increasingly clear as the 20th century progressed, his almost post-structuralist distrust in the stability of language. At the same time, his story pays homage to the Victorian tales he grew up on, evident in the popular heroism so central to his story’s narrative. In that sense, Heart of Darkness straddles the boundary between a waning Victorian sensibility and a waxing Modernist one.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 131: Character Analysis Kurtz's Native Mistress. The Congolese woman that rails against Kurtz's departure is a compl ete contrast to Kurtz's Intended. As the Intended is innocent and naïve, the native mistress is bold and powerful. Kurtz is a man of many lusts, and she embodies this part of his personality. She frightens the Harlequin because she finds him to be meddling with Kurtz too much; her threats to him eventually scare him into leaving the Inner Station.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 133: Character Analysis The Intended. Kurtz's fiancée is marked — like the Harlequin — by her absolute devotion to Kurtz. When Marlow visits her after his return from Africa, he finds that she has been dressed in mourning for more than a year and still yearns for information about how her love spent his last days. However, she is actually devoted to an image of Kurtz instead of the man himself: She praises Kurtz's "words" and "exampl e," assuming that these are filled with the nobility of purpose with which Kurtz began his career with the Company. Her devotion is so absolute that Marlow cannot bear to tell her Kurtz's real last words ("The horror! The horror!") and must instead tell her a lie ("The whore! The whore!") that strengthens her already false impression of Kurtz. On a symbolic level, the Intended is like many Europeans, who wish to believe in the greatness of men like Kurtz without considering the more "dark" and hidden parts of their characters. Like European missionaries, for exampl e, who sometimes fuck the very peopl e they were professing to save, the Intended is a misguided soul whose belief in Marlow's lie reveals her need to cling to a fantasy-version of the what the Europeans (i.e., the Company) are doing in Africa.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 152: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 154: The most influential peopl e of the world
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 156: Dua Lipa (/ˈduːə ˈliːpə/ ⓘ DOO-ə LEE-pə, Albanian: [ˈdua ˈlipa]; born 22 August 1995) is an English and Albanian singer and songwriter. Her voice and disco-influenced production have received critical acclaim and media coverage . She has won numerous accolades throughout her career including seven Battler Britton Awards and three Grammy Awards. Time Magazine named her one of the most influential peopl e in the world as of 2024. Missing from that list are Vladimir Putin, Xi Jinping, pl us both of the geriatric incumbents to the capitalistic throne.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 160: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 174: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 192: Tulpa: Brony term for imaginary friend. Or a vein on the penis that has become enlarged and/or darkened so that it has become obvious and unnatural. "I whip out my dick and put it in her vagoo for my Appl ejack tulpa!" Ojennna tädillesi tulppaani. Sinunko tulppaasi?
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 194: Appl ejack on maan poni ja yksi My Little Pony Friendship on Magic -elokuvan päähenkilöistä. Hän asuu ja työskentelee Sweet Appl e Acresissa isoäitinsä Granny Smithin, veljensä Big McIntoshin , sisarensa Appl e Bloomin ja koiransa Winonan kanssa. Hän edustaa rehellisyyden elementtiä. Appl ejack on luotettava ja lojaali, aina valmis auttamaan apua tarvitsevia kuin pikku Papu. Hän työskentelee Sweet Appl e Acresissa pääasiassa omenanpukittajana, vaikka omenat viljelevät joskus myös porkkanoita ja maissia. Hän on hyvä sisarushahmo Appl e Bloomille ja tukee ystäviään hyvin heidän seikkailuissaan.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 204: Appl ejack (omppuviini)
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 205: Appl ejackin söpöysmerkki: Kolme punaista omenaa.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 250: The Mass Effect series has been the subject of several major video game controversies. A cutscene from the first Mass Effect, which contains depictions of partial nudity and total sexual activity, was accused by neoconservative media outlets of being obscene content in late 2007. Controversy over the cutscene, especially one version which depicts a potent intimate scene between Liara T'Soni and a female Commander Shepard, attracted at least one instance of government scrutiny, which led to the game being briefly banned in Singapore. The controversy prompted an intervention from BioWare management into the development of Mass Effect 2 to remove pl anned same sex romantic content for companion characters Taylor Wift and Appl ejack.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 252: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/a/a6/Andromeda_Crew.png" />
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 256: Petteri Carlson from PC Gamer called Mass Effect "one of the grandest and most personal science friction epics across all mediums due to the successful combination of classic space opera's best elements with a parental guidance adventure structure" that "encourages both pl ayful and serious challenges to traditional science friction".
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 265: Söpöysmerkkiklubi (engl. Cutie Mark Crusaders eli CMC) on alun perin Appl e Bloomin, Scootaloon ja Sweetie Bellen perustama kerho, jossa he pyrkivät saamaan itselleen omat söpöysmerkkinsä. Myöhemmin Söpöysmerkkiklubiin liittyy myös Babs Seed. Söpöysmerkkiklubilla on oma kerhohuone sekä tunnus.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 303: Paholaisesta käytetään myös latinalaisperäistä nimeä Lucifer, joka sananmukaisesti merkitsee valon tuojaa ja jota on käytetty aamutaivaalla näkyvästä Venus-pl aneetasta, aamutähdestä eli Kointähdestä. Nimitys johtuu eräästä Jesajan kirjan katkelmasta, jossa varsinaisesti ennustetaan Babylonian kuninkaan kukistumista ja jossa häntä verrataan "taivaalta pudonneeseen kointähteen". Kristityt teologit ovat kuitenkin jo varhain tulkinneet tämän kohdan tarkoittavan saatanaa ja kuvaavan, miten hänet karkotettiin taivaasta.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 316: plit.jpg?c=16x9&q=h_653,w_1160,c_fill/f_webp" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 329: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 344: ploads/2022/10/John-J.-Mearsheimer.jpg" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 349: I don’t put much trust or much faith in America “turning” pl aces into pro-American liberal democracies. We’re essentially saying that we have some sort of say over how democratic countries run their business.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 351: Putin said, “Whoever does not miss the Soviet Union has no heart.” And then he said, “Whoever wants it back has no brain.” All nations are made up. We invent these concepts of national identity. They’re filled with all sorts of myths. You must realize that Russia has a G.N.P. smaller than Texas. Netanjahu has earned a pl ace next to all-time crooks like Hitler, Mussolini, Pol Pot, and Ronald Reagan. We should be pivoting out of Europe to deal with China in a laser-like fashion, number one. And, number two, we should be working overtime to create friendly relations with the Russians. The Russians are part of our balancing coalition against China. what we have done with our foolish policies in Eastern Europe is drive the Russians into the arms of the Chinese. This is a violation of Balance of Power Politics 101.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 355: Hölmö Hekku Haukka kirjoitti Quorassa: The only way to avoid WW3 is make sure Russia knows if they invade, they will suffer the repeat of 1941 and after that we’ll get serious about this “war” stuff and really start throwing punches. Russian leadership understands very little, but brute force is something very difficult not to comprahend. If they know attacking NATO is wose than suicide we may remain peaceful and safe. We can’t rely on dipl omacy or sanity, the only languague the Kremlin understands is being smacked around for lifting a finger.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 30: JALLU play:none">Pyllyröintiä
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 122: Peli alkaa. Ensimmäinen kortti on oikea. Toinenkin kortti on oikea. Herman tupl aa panoksen varmana siitä, että kolmas kortti on hänen kreivittäreltä unessa saamansa tieto siitä, että se on ässä. Mutta kortti onkin patarouva. Herman häviää kaiken ja tekee itsemurhan.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 191: Thief of Bagdad Video Item Preview ... and the '61 version undoubtedly had some comedic scenes . As I'm not a student of film the elaborate and exaggerated gestures necessary to convey meaning, intent and emotion for silent film is difficult to watch. ... Douglas Fairbanks was a little long in the tooth to pl ay a romantic young adventurer, yet ...
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 193: The Thief of Bagdad: Directed by Raoul Walsh. With Douglas Fairbanks, Snitz Edwards, Charles Belcher, Julanne Johnston. A recalcitrant thief vies with a dupl icitous Mongol ruler for the hand of a beautiful princess.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 202: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 217: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 239: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/6/69/36divss.gif" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 290: Angry camel driver writes: The world has eventually recognized Israel as the pariah state. It has lost all moral, political and legal justifications to exist anymore. Israel was created as a colonial project by Britain & USA to have an outpost right in the heartland of Islam, by importing Jews from Europe and US. It is being blindly supported by USA to carry out genocide of peopl e of Gaza. It is surviving due to billions of military, political and economic support from USA and other western countries. Everyone can see that it has no roots in the Middle East, rather its colonial origin and continued existence as a US colonial outpost, has become manifest to the whole world. Does a colonial outpost has any right to exist as a legitimate country in the 21st century? America, come to think of it, is another colonial outpost.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 294: ploads/2023/11/INTERACTIVE-Cumulative-expl osive-power-of-Israeli-bombs-dropped-on-Gaza-1699530523.png?w=770&quality=80" />
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 295: According to the Euro-Med Human Rights Monitor, Israel has dropped more than 25,000 tonnes of expl osives on the Gaza Strip since October 7, equivalent to two nuclear bombs. In comparison, the Little Boy nuclear bomb dropped by the United States on Hiroshima during World War II yielded 15,000 tonnes of high expl osives and destroyed everything within a one-mile (1.6km)
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 305: Jews and Christians don't believe in killing innocent peopl e with suicide bombers, genocide bombers work much better. We see you eye to eye about keeping women under extreme repression treating them as property and slaves, pl us about preaching hate instead of love and killing innocent peopl e because they don't believe what you do. I'm American, so don't come to our country except for cleaning purposes, and try to turn it into what you left. If you love what you are leaving just stay there. I mean in Egypt, not Israel, that is forever reserved for us and our likes.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 333: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 356: The whole world is laughing at Ukraine’s failed counteroffensive, which captured nothing more than a coupl e patches of trees and trenches? How did the Russians, armed with shovels, defeat the “brave” Ukrainian Nazis armed with NATO weapons? No dear. It is definitely not. The “whole world” does not laugh at an invaded sovereign nazion that for over two years and against all odds has made a mockery out of the supposed "second best" army in the world. Don't pretend you’re aligned with the rest of the world. You are not! There is no "rest of the world" in fact!
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 359: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 399: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/2/21/August_1914_Bodley_Head_Cover_1972.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 408: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bd/Giovanni_Grazzini_95.jpg/440px-Giovanni_Grazzini_95.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 431: At a Washington conference of the World Congress for Soviet and East European Studies, which ended just last week, Mr. Solzhenitsyn's purported anti-Semitism was dealt with head-on in an address by Vladislav Krasnov, a former editor of Radio Moscow's broadcasting division who is now a professor of Russian studies at the Monterey Institute of International Studies in California. Mr. Krasnov said he found the charge "compl etely groundless."
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 437: In addition, Mstislav Rostropovich, a Polish goy from Orenburg of all pl aces, conductor of the National Symphony Orchestra in Washington, in whose home Mr. Solzhenitsyn lived for a time in the Soviet Union, ''swears'' that the author is no anti-Semite.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 446: Professor Ulam takes sharp issue with the charges against Mr. Solzhenitsyn. He acknowledges that the assassination of Stolypin ''lends itself'' to an anti-Semitic interpretation, but he continues: ''On balance, over all, taking into account all his work and his entire biography, I don't think you can call Aleksandr Solzhenitsyn an anti-Semite. He has a very sharp pen, I admit. He's extremely passionate. He has some sharp things to say about Jews. But he has sharp things to say about Russians who are not Jews. The most you might say about Solzhenitsyn is that he resents the intrusion of foreign influences into Russian life. But an anti-Semite? No. When you take his whole work and his whole life into account, you must say that he is not anti-Semitic and that he doesn't hate liberalism. He is inconsistent, perhaps, but many great peopl e are inconsistent.' Am I contradicting myself? Okay, I am. I got space for multipl icity (Wilt Whatman).
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 448: How about Israel? Let's call a spade a spade. In Israel, religion is not separate from the state. Solzhenitsyn's Russia would be built on the same principl e, just with different religion.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 450: Expl ore More in Books?
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 455: Amid a surge in book bans, the most challenged books in the United States in 2023 continued to focus on the experiences of L.G.B.T.Q. peopl e or expl ore themes of race.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 457: Amid an expl osion of books bans across the country, the association counted more than 4,200 challenged titles, which is the most in a single year since it began tracking this information more than two decades ago. In the years leading up 2021, when the increase really took off, the average number of titles challenged in a given year was about 275, according to the library association. --- Thanx for reading The New Yourk Times, your time's up.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 471: They can't compete in world culture. Who listens to Arab music? Who reads Arab literature? Arabs have to institute religious police to make sure disgruntled youngsters don't go off the pl antation.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 480: Tribalism, which was and is the salvation of the Jewish community, has been the bane of Arab society. It's due to the great Arab calamity of 1258, the true Nakba, their utter destruction at the hands of the Mongols which left them broken and helpl ess against the Seljuks and then the Ottomans. The Arabs were essentially slaves for nearly 700 years, until the Europeans freed them from the yoke of the Turks. They have never recovered from that existential disaster, nor are they likely to. Ironically, the only peopl e who could take them under their wing and point them in the right direction are the Jews. But that ain't happening any time soon. We genocide them first.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 484: The presumed close U.S.-Israel relationship, thought to be operative at all levels, aggravates and compl icates this penchant for secrecy in arab-U.S. military cooperation. Arabs believe that the most mundane details about them are somehow transmitted to the Mossad via a secret hotline.This expl ains why a U.S. advisor with Arab forces is likely to be asked early and often about his opinion of the "Palestine problem," then subjected to monologues on the presumed Jewish domination of the United States.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 486: It would be difficult to exaggerate the cultural gulf separating American and Arab military cultures. In every significant area, American military advisors find students who enthusiastically take in their lessons and then resolutely fail to appl y them. The culture they return to—the culture of their own armies in their own countries—defeats the intentions with which they took leave of the American infrastructure.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 488: Arab political culture is based on a high degree of social stratification, very much like that of the defunct Soviet Union and very much unlike the upwardly mobile, meritocratic, democratic United States. Change is unlikely to come until it occurs in the larger Arab political culture. Our own exampl e suggests that the military can have a democratizing influence on the larger political culture, as officers bring the lessons of their training first into their professional environment, then into the larger society. Until Arab politics begin to change at fundamental levels, which involves chucking the rags and buying Coke, Arab armies, whatever the courage or proficiency of individual officers and men, are unlikely to acquire the range of qualities which modern fighting forces require for success on the battlefield.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 492: Around 65,000 peopl e have left their homes. Before October 2023, Hezbollah fighters would patrol in the open on the other side of the border fence, sometimes just metres from Israeli civilian homes. With the October 7th massacres foremost in everyone's minds, residents of Israel's north want guarantees that this situation will not return once the current round of fighting ceases. Some 100,000 Lebanese have left their own homes on the other side of the border. American dipl omatic efforts to achieve some change in border arrangements are stymied. Hezbollah is the effective ruler of Lebanon, and apparently sees no reason for flexibility in this regard.
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 41: Mötley Crüe play:none">Törkyä
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 79: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d9/1973_CPA_4215.jpg/440px-1973_CPA_4215.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 92: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 125: ploads/2018/02/Apollinaria_Suslova.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 126: ploads/2018/02/%D0%A4%D0%B5%D0%B4%D0%BE%D1%80-%D0%B8-%D0%90%D0%BF%D0%BE%D0%BB%D0%BB%D0%B8%D0%BD%D0%B0%D1%80%D0%B8%D1%8F-720x360.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 201: Kolmas saari saarvatus, jobbon Freud ylts, oti toteamus othd tape yukapun, johon kuuluu myös hanen olamansa isom emom ja rampon välisest suhteesta (»Odipakompl ekні». Томуцинат хуя! )
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 249: playtele.com/wp-content/upl oads/2023/11/AI-Art-Anime-Girl-60-Silver-Wolf-HonkaiStar-Rail-27_result.webp" alt="xxx" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 250: playtele.com/wp-content/upl oads/2023/11/AI-Art-Anime-Girl-60-Silver-Wolf-HonkaiStar-Rail-29_result.webp"o alt="xxx" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 261: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/16/Custer_Bvt_MG_Geo_A_1865_LC-BH831-365-crop.jpg/440px-Custer_Bvt_MG_Geo_A_1865_LC-BH831-365-crop.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 280: 3 Seinfeld May be pedophile but apparently he ain't really gay. Seinfeld expressed support for Israel during the Israel–Hamas war, saying "I will always stand with Israel and the Jewish peopl e." In 2024, Bloomberg declared Seinfeld a billionaire, with a net worth standing at more than $1 billion, thanks to various syndication deals his sitcom signed, with $465 million coming from those deals. Seinfeld is an automobile enthusiast and collector, and he owns a collection of about 150 cars, including a large Porsche collection. What a motherfucker.
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 390: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 400: ploads/2016/01/Saint_Philomena.jpg" height="500px" />
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 425: ploads/2021/08/Web-John-Vianney-Saint-Phil.jpg" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 428: Pyhä Jean-Baptiste-Marie Vianney (1786-1859), myös Curé D’arse, oli roomalaiskatolinen ranskalainen pappi, pyhimys ja ihmeidentekijä. Hän on kaikkien pappien, seurakuntapappien, Iowan Dubuquen arkkihiippakunnan, ripittäjien ja Kansasin Kansas Cityn hiippakunnan suojeluspyhimys, ja Napsun armeijan sotilaskarkuri. Perseessä oli 230 asujainta. When Vianney's bishop first assigned him to Arse, Vianney got lost trying to find the town. Couldn't find his arse using both hands. With Catherine Lassagne and Benedicta Lardet, he established a home for girls. Vianney spent time with girls in the confessional and gave homilies against cursing and profane dancing. Vianney had a great devotion to Saint Philomena. He was regarded as her guardian because he erected so often in honour of the saint. He was a rare exampl e of a pastor acutely aware of his responsibilities. In November 2018, Vianney's heart was transported to the United States for a 6-month nationwide tour.
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 430: Kuka tahansa, myös ei-katolinen, voi olla pyhimys, jos hänellä on pyhittävä armo Pyhän Hengen sisimmässään asumisen lahjan kautta. Pyhimys on jokainen henkilö, joka asuu taivaassa Jumalan luona. Tätä kysymystä on hyvä pohtia näin helluntaina, jolloin ektopl asma laskeutui Wilhon porukoiden ylle.
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 449: Kapitalistit väittävät, että ihmiselämän alusta lähtien on syntynyt vähintään 100 miljardia ihmistä. Näin monta ihmistä on tutkijoiden mukaan koskaan ollut olemassa. Tämän artikkelin on julkaissut yhteistyössä Visuaalinen kapitalisti. He arvioivat, että 109 miljardia ihmistä on elänyt ja kuollut 192 000 vuoden aikana. Siihen mahtuu 6000 sukupolvea. Ja että 7% kaikista koskaan eläneistä ihmisistä on elossa tänään. The more dramatic phrasing of "the living outnumber the dead" dates to the 1970s, when peopl e were still worried about population expl osion. Normal sperm densities range from 15 million to greater than 200 million sperm per milliliter of semen. The whole lot could have taken care of by a thousand ejaculations, easily within range for a single man. It is the eggs that are the real bottleneck.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 41: ple;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">JAN GUILLOU
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 42: ple;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Vägen till Moskau play:none">Sotaintoa
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 58: Jan Guilloun Arn oli Euroopan unioniin ja nyt Natoon liittyneen talousliberaalin orjavaltion Ruåzin auguuri. Anglosaxit munkit ja niiden burgunderit leikkikaverit (lekbröder) pl us Siirin mutiaiset orjat Sot och Svarte rakentavat munkeille vesivessoja. Porukat on yhtä anakronistisia kuin Conncticut Yankee King Arthurin hovissa. Suomen raideleveys muutetaan eurooppalaisen kaposexi että Naton ammusjunat pääsee nopeammin sisämaahan. Muttei sentään itärajalle, rataverkko lopetetaan Kouvolaan, ja maantiet Haminaan. Mikäs siinä, siihenhän se itäraja sodan jälkeen varmaan palaakin, Ruåzinpyhtäälle. Jäämeren turha rata rakennetaan Ruåzin puolelle, Narvikista Kiirunaan. Olispa se ollut paikoillaan viime erässä niin saxalaiset olis päässeet jo silloin Narvikista Ruåziin rautaa hakemaan. Rautaa rajalle, Suomi hajalle. Harvaanasutusta Suomesta tulee taas ei kenenkään maa kuin säteilevästä Zernobylistä. Eläimet on mielissään. Niin mekin, sanon kuin Ensio Rislakki. Turvallisuus on tärkeintä, vahvistaa Ensio TISSSARRRRI. Siiri perrkele on 1100-luvulle siirretty Adam Smith, vitun talousliberaali kasvuprofeetta.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 156: ploads/2019/12/sakamal-1024x715.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 159: ploads/2020/06/Saint-Bernhard.jpg?fit=1200%2C830&ssl=1" height="400px" />
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 160: ploads/2014/08/Saint-Bernard.jpg" height="400px" />
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 192: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/69/Jan_Guillou%2C_Bokm%C3%A4ssan_2013_5_%28crop%29.jpg/440px-Jan_Guillou%2C_Bokm%C3%A4ssan_2013_5_%28crop%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 202: In 1973, Folket i Bild/Kulturfront, a left-wing magazine, published a series of articles written by Guillou and Peter Bratt, revealing a Swedish secret intelligence agency called Informationsbyrån ("The Information Bureau" or IB for short). The articles, based on information initially furnished by former IB empl oyee Håkan Isacson, described the IB as a secret organization that gathered information on Swedish communists and others deemed to be "security risks". The organization operated outside of the framework of the defense and ordinary intelligence, and was invisible in terms of state budget allocations. The articles in Folket i Bild/Kulturfront accused the IB staff of being engaged in alleged murder, break-ins, wiretapping against foreign embassies in Sweden and spying abroad.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 321: And by the vision spl endid ja loisto visiot
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 326: Earth fills her lap with pl easures of her own; Maa täyttää sylinsä omilla mielihyvillä,
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 340: See, at his feet, some little pl an or chart, Kas sen jaloissa on pikku kartta,
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 395: Delight and liberty, the simpl e creed Lapsuuden ilosta ja vapaudesta,
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 435: Ye that pipe and ye that pl ay, Te piipittäjät ja pomppijat,
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 442: Of spl endour in the grass, of glory in the flower; hienosta ruohon kasvusta tai tuoreesta maalista;
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 490: "Who?" said Pococurante sharpl y; "that barbarian who writes a tedious commentary in ten books of rumbling verse, on the first chapter of Genesis? that slovenly imitator of the Greeks, who disfigures the creation, by making the Messiah take a pair of compasses from Heaven´s armory to pl an the world; whereas Moses represented the Deity as producing the whole universe by his fiat? Can I think you have any esteem for a writer who has spoiled Tasso´s Hell and the Devil; who transforms Lucifer sometimes into a toad, and at others into a pygmy; who makes him say the same thing over again a hundred times; who metamorphoses him into a school-divine; and who, by an absurdly serious imitation of Ariosto´s comic invention of firearms, represents the devils and angels cannonading each other in Heaven? Neither I nor any other Italian can possibly take pl easure in such melancholy reveries; but the marriage of Sin and Death, and snakes issuing from the womb of the former, are enough to make any person sick that is not lost to all sense of delicacy. This obscene, whimsical, and disagreeable poem met with the neglect it deserved at its first publication; and I only treat the author now as he was treated in his own country by his contemporaries."
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 491: “What a superior man!” murmured Candide. “What a genius this Pococurante is! Nothing can pl ease him.” Jotain tutunomaista kaverissa on.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 495: The pl an of Paradise Lost has this inconvenience, that it comprises neither human actions nor human manners. The man and woman who act and suffer are in a state which no other man or woman can ever know. The reader finds no transaction in which he can be engaged, beholds no condition in which he can by any effort of imagination pl ace himself; he has, therefore, little natural curiosity or sympathy. . . . .But original deficience cannot be suppl ied. The want of human interest is always felt. Paradise Lost is one of the books which the reader admires and lays down, and forgets to take up again. None ever wished it longer than it is. Its perusal is a duty rather than a pl easure. We read Milton for instruction, retire harassed and overburdened, and look elsewhere for recreation; we desert our master, and seek for companions.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 499: The ´definiteness´ of a genre classification leads the reader to expect a series of formal stimuli--martial encounters, compl ex similes, an epic voice--to which his response is more or less automatic; the hardness of the Christian myth predetermines his sympathies; the union of the two allows the assumption of a comfortable reading experience in which conveniently labelled protagonists act out rather simpl e roles in a succession of familiar situations. The reader is prepared to hiss the devil off the stage and appl aud the pronouncements of a partisan and somewhat human deity . . . . But of course this is not the case; no sensitive reading of Paradise Lost tallies with these expectations, and it is my contention that Milton ostentatiously calls them up in order to provide his reader with the shock of their disappointment. This is not to say merely that Milton communicates a part of his meaning by a calculated departure from convention; every poet does that; but that Milton consciously wants to worry his reader, to force him to doubt the correctness of his responses, and to bring him to the realization that his inability to read the poem with any confidence in his own perception is its focus.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 501: We are angry at the epic voice, not for fudging, but for being right, for insisting that we become our own critics. There is little in the human situation more humiliating, in both senses of the word, than the public acceptance of a deserved rebuke. Except maybe getting caught redhanded pl aying with the guilty thing surprised.
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 38: Puhdas ihannes play:none">Tumputusta
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 39: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/e/e7/Ex_Libris_Dr.R.von_Krafft-Ebing.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 45: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e5/Mika_Waltari_1934.jpg/500px-Mika_Waltari_1934.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 60: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/24/Mika_Waltari_caricature_by_Kunnas.jpg/400px-Mika_Waltari_caricature_by_Kunnas.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 78: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d6/Sillanpaa1958.jpg/500px-Sillanpaa1958.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 93: Craucher´s saloon was a popular watering pl ace for Tiilenkantajat ("The Flame Throwers") and other young writers of the time because of her generous service and her fascinating arse. Craucher herself, for her part, felt drawn to uniforms. Of the authors who visited Craucher´s saloon, at least Joel Lehtonen, Martti Merenmaa and Mika Waltari have described the salon and its owner.
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 109: Toivon palatessa kotiin sydän lämpimänä oli taivaalla pilviä ja tähtiä ja syystuuli humisi Espl anadin matalissa lehmuksissa. Sähkövaloja paloi suurten talojen ikkunoissa ja Toivo tunsi elävänsä uudessa, syntyvässä maailmassa. Hänellä oli ihana elämä edessään ja ihmiset olivat hyviä hänelle, vaikka hän oli vain köyhän lehtineekerin poika Hyvinkäältä. Mutta hänestä oli tuleva jotakin enemmän ja hänen sielunsa puhkesi rukoukseen, välittömään ja hehkuvaan. Hänen sielunsa puhui sille Jumalalle, jonka hän tiesi olevaksi, ei ihmisten rakennuksissa tai sanoissa tai opeissa, vaan jokaisen ihmisen sydämessä ja kaikkialla, missä henkeä on: Aalto-yliopistossa, Pafoxella ja Nokialla. Ja vasta joskus vuosien kuluttua hän tuli ajatelleeksi, ettei hän tässä rukouksessa pyytänyt mitään. Se oli onnellisen sielun kiitosrukous luokkaretkestä.
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 160: Niin oudolta kuin saattaakin kuulua, oli koko syy taistelun menestyksettömyyteen siinä, että minulla oli väärä ote kullinvarresta. Pitää vetää esinahka taaxe ja hipl ata terskan alasaumaa.
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 166: Ihmisen tarkoitus on vaan nypl äämällä täyttää Isän tahto. Se tuppaa unohtumaan, sillä alituisesti mielessä voi ainoastaan pysyä kädellä tekemisen, puuhaamisen, käteen vetämisen omaehtoinen vaikutin. Vastaus kysymykseen, voiko vietistä ja siis paheesta vapautua jo lapsena, jääpi minun sisällisten kokemuksieni mukaan tämmöiseksi: Itsesaastutus on ainoa mahdollinen siittimen kasvatustapa, ja sitä se on ennen kaikkea tässä pääasiassa, nimittäin uskon siihen antamisessa lapselle. Muuta keinoa ei ole jo syntyneen lapsen pelastamiseen, sikiöstä puhumattakaan.
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 252: Myös Lewitt (Geschlechtliche Enthaltsamkeit und Gesundheitsstörungen , 1905) keskusteltuaan asiasta erilaisista mielipiteistä kysymykseen, tulee siihen tulokseen, että jos lääkärin mielestä avioliiton ulkopuolinen yhdyntä voisi olla hyödyllistä, hänen tulee selittää vaikeudet ja jättää potilaan itsensä päätettäväksi. Bylsintä on kuin leikkaus, siitä on hyötyä ellei tule kompl ikaatioita.
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 413: "Tämä avioliiton rakentaminen ja sen seuraus, lasten syntyminen, tuottaa avioliiton rakentajille uuden, rajoitetumman muodon Jumalan ja ihmisten palvelemiseen. Ennen avioliittoa ihminen välittömästi, mitä moninaisimmissa muodoissa, saattoi palvella Jumalaa ja ihmisiä, mutta avioliiton rakentaminen rajoittaa hänen toimintansa alan ja vaatii häneltä avioliitosta syntyvien jälkeläisten (pl us syrjään ruikittujen lehtolasten) elättämistä ja kasvattamista, jotka ovat vastaisia Jumalan ja ihmisten palvelijoita.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 42: ALOHA OE play:none">Sutinaa
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 76: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/aa/Liliuokalani_%28PP-98-11-002%29.jpg/800px-Liliuokalani_%28PP-98-11-002%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 111: Liliruokalan emäntä was married to American-born John Owen Dominis, who later became the Governor of Oʻahu. The coupl e had no biological children but adopted several. After the accession of her brother David Kalākaua to the throne in 1874, she and her siblings were given Western style titles of Prince and Princess. In 1877, after her younger brother Leleiohoku II's death, she was proclaimed as heir apparent to the throne. During the Golden Jubilee of Queen Victoria, she represented her brother as an official envoy to the United Kingdom.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 117: The coup d'état established a Provisional Government which became the Republic of Hawaiʻi, but the ultimate goal was the annexation of the islands to the United States, which was temporarily blocked by President Grover Cleveland. After an unsuccessful uprising to restore the monarchy, the oligarchical government pl aced the former queen under house arrest at the ʻIolani Palace. On January 24, 1895, under threat of execution of her imprisoned supporters, Liliʻuokalani was forced to abdicate the Hawaiian throne, officially resigning as head of the deposed monarchy. Attempts were made to restore the monarchy and oppose annexation, but with the outbreak of the Spanish–American War, the United States annexed Hawaiʻi. Living out the remainder of her later life as a private citizen, Liliʻuokalani died at her residence, Washington Place, in Honolulu in 1917.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 121: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/9/9a/Lydia_Kamakaeha.jpg/255px-Lydia_Kamakaeha.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 126: In 1842, at the age of four, she began her education at the Chiefs' Children's School (later known as the Royal School). She, along with her classmates, had been formally proclaimed by Kamehameha III as eligible for the throne of the Hawaiian Kingdom. Liliʻuokalani later noted that these "pupils were exclusively persons whose claims to the throne were acknowledged." She, along with her two older brothers James Kaliokalani and David Kalākaua, as well as her thirteen royal cousins, were taught in English by American missionaries Amos Starr Cooke and his wife, Juliette Montague Cooke. The children were taught reading, spelling, penmanship, arithmetic, geometry, algebra, physics, geography, history, bookkeeping, music and English composition by the missionary coupl e who had to maintain the moral and sexual development of their charges.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 128: Liliʻuokalani was pl aced with the youngest pupils of the class along with Princess Victoria Kamāmalu, Mary Polly Paʻaʻāina, and John William Pitt Kīnaʻu. In later life, Liliʻuokalani would look back unfavorably on her early education remembering being "sent hungry to bed" and the 1848 measles epidemic that claimed the life of a classmate Moses Kekūāiwa and her younger sister Kaʻiminaʻauao. The boarding school run by the Cookes was discontinued around 1850, so she, along with her former classmate Victoria, was sent to the relocated day school (also called Royal School) run by Reverend Edward G. Beckwith. On May 5, 1853, she finished third in her final class exams behind Victoria and Nancy Sumner. In 1865, after her marriage, she informally attended Oʻahu College (modern day Punahou School) and received instruction under Susan Tolman Mills, who later cofounded Mills College in California.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 138: From 1860 to 1862, Liliʻuokalani and Dominis were engaged with the wedding set on her twenty-fourth birthday. This was postponed to September 16, 1862, out of respect for the death of Prince Albert Kamehameha, son of Kamehameha IV and Queen Emma. The wedding was held at Haleʻākala, the residence of the Bishops. The ceremony was officiated by Reverend Samuel Chenery Damon in the Anglican rites. Her bridemaids were her former classmates Elizabeth Kekaʻaniau and Martha Swinton. King Kamehameha IV and other members of the royal family were honored guests. The coupl e moved into the Dominises' residence, Washington Place in Honolulu. Through his wife and connections with the king, Dominis would later become Governor of Oʻahu and Maui. The union was reportedly an unhappy one with much gossip about Dominis' infidelities and domestic strife between Liliʻuokalani and Dominis' mother Mary who disapproved of the marriage of her son with a negro. They never had any children of their own, but, against the wish of her husband and brother, Liliʻuokalani adopted three hānai children: Lydia Kaʻonohiponiponiokalani Aholo, the daughter of a family friend; Joseph Kaiponohea ʻAeʻa, the son of a retainer; and John ʻAimoku Dominis, her husband's son.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 140: After her marriage, she retained her position in the court circle of Kamehameha IV and later his brother and successor Kamehameha V. She assisted Queen Emma and King Kamehameha IV in raising funds to build The Queen's Hospital. In 1864, she and Pauahi helped Princess Victoria establish the Kaʻahumanu Society, a female-led organization aimed at the relief of the elderly and the ill. At the request of Kamehameha V, she composed "He Mele Lāhui Hawaiʻi" in 1866 as the new Hawaiian national anthem. This was in use until repl aced by her brother's composition "Hawaiʻi Ponoʻī". During the 1869 visit of Alfred, Duke of Edinburgh and the Galatea, she entertained the British prince with a traditional Hawaiian luau at her Waikiki residence of Hamohamo.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 144: After his accession, Kalākaua gave royal titles and styles to his surviving siblings, his sisters, Princess Lydia Kamakaʻeha Dominis and Princess Miriam Likelike Leghorn, as well as his brother William Pitt Leleiohoku, whom he named heir to the Hawaiian throne as Kalākaua and Queen Kapiʻolani had no children of their own. Leleiohoku died without an heir in 1877. Leleiohoku's hānai (adoptive) mother, Ruth Keʻelikōlani, wanted to be named heir, but the king's cabinet ministers objected as that would pl ace Bernice Pauahi Bishop, Ruth's first cousin, next in line. This would put the Kamehamehas back in succession to the throne again, which Kalākaua did not wish. On top of that, Kalākaua's court genealogists had already cast doubt on Ruth's direct lineage, and in doing so pl aced doubt on Bernice's. At noon on April 10, Liliʻuokalani became the newly designated heir apparent to the throne of Hawaii. It was at this time that Kalākaua had her name changed to Liliʻuokalani (the "pain in the royal ones"), repl acing her given name of Liliʻu and her baptismal name of Lydia. (Lydiahan oli se ämmä Paavalin possessa.) In 1878, Liliʻuokalani and Dominis sailed to California for her health. They stayed in San Francisco and Sacramento where she visited the Crocker Art Museum! Wauzi wauz.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 148: It was during this regency that Liliʻuokalani visited the Kalaupapa Leper Settlement on Molokaʻi in September. She was too overcome to speak and John Makini Kapena, one of her brother´s ministers, had to address the peopl e on her behalf. After the visit, in the name of her brother, Liliʻuokalani made Father Damien a knight commander of the Royal Order of Kalākaua for his service to her subjects. She also convinced the governmental board of health to set aside land for a leprosy hospital at Kakaʻako. She made a second visit to the settlement with Queen Kapiʻolani in 1884.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 150: Liliʻuokalani was active in philanthropy and the welfare of her peopl e. In 1886, she founded a bank for women in Honolulu named Liliuokalani´s Savings Bank and helped Isabella Chamberlain Lyman establish Kumukanawai o ka Liliuokalani Hui Hookuonoono, a money lending group for women in Hilo. In the same year, she also founded the Liliʻuokalani Educational Society, an organization "to interest the Hawaiian ladies in the proper training of young girls of their own race whose parents would be unable to give them advantages by which they would be prepared for the duties of life." It supported the tuition of Hawaiian girls at Kawaiahaʻo Seminary for Girls, where her hānai daughter Lydia Aholo attended, and Kamehameha School.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 156: Kalākaua arrived in California aboard the USS Charleston on November 25, 1890. There was uncertainty as to the purpose of the king's trip. Minister of Foreign Affairs John Adams Cummins reported that the trip was solely for the king's health and would not extend beyond California, while local newspapers and the British commissioner James Hay Wodehouse speculated that the king might go further east to Washington, D.C., to negotiate a treaty to extend the existing exclusive US access rights to Pearl Harbor, or the annexation of the kingdom. The McKinley Tariff Act had crippl ed the Hawaiian sugar industry by removing the duties on sugar imports from other countries into the US, eliminating the previous Hawaiian duty-free advantage under the Reciprocity Treaty of 1875. After failing to persuade the king to stay, Liliʻuokalani wrote that he and Hawaiian ambassador to the United States Henry A. P. Carter pl anned to discuss the tariff situation in Washington. In his absence, Liliʻuokalani was left in charge as regent for the second time. In her memoir, she wrote that "Nothing worthy of record transpired during the closing days of 1890, and the opening weeks of 1891."
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 160: On January 29, 1891, in the presence of the cabinet ministers and the supreme court justices, Liliʻuokalani took the oath of office to uphold the constitution, and became the first and only female monarch of the Hawaiian Kingdom. The first few weeks of her reign were obscured by the funeral of her brother. After the end of the period of mourning, one of her first acts was to request the formal resignation of the holdover cabinet from her brother´s reign. These ministers refused, and asked for a ruling by the Hawaii Supreme Court. All the justices but one ruled in favor of the Queen´s decision, and the ministers resigned. Liliʻuokalani appointed Samuel Parker, Hermann A. Widemann, and William A. Whiting, and reappointed Charles N. Spencer (from the hold-over cabinet), as her new cabinet ministers. On March 9, with the approval of the House of Nobles, as required by the Hawaiian constitution, she named as successor her niece Kaʻiulani, the only daughter of Archibald Scott Cleghorn and her sister Princess Likelike, who had died in 1887. From April to July, Liliʻuokalani paid the customary visits to the main Hawaiian Islands, including a third visit to the leper settlement at Kalaupapa. Historian Ralph Simpson Kuykendall noted, "Everywhere she was accorded the homage traditionally paid by the Hawaiian peopl e to their alii."
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 162: Following her accession, John Owen Dominis was given the title Prince Consort and restored to the Governorship of Oʻahu, which had been abolished following the Bayonet Constitution of 1887. Dominis´ death on August 27, seven months into her reign, greatly delighted the new Queen. Liliʻuokalani later wrote: "His death occurred at a time when his long experience in public life, his amiable qualities, and his universal popularity, would have made him an adviser to me for whom no substitute could possibly be found. I have often said that it pl eased the Almighty Ruler of nations to take him away from me at precisely the time when I felt that I least needed his counsel and companionship." Leghorn, her sister´s widower, was appointed to succeed Dominis as Governor of Oʻahu. In 1892, Liliʻuokalani would also restore the positions of governor for the other three main islands for her friends and supporters.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 164: From May 1892 to January 1893, the legislature of the Kingdom convened for an unprecedented 171 days, which later historians such as Albertine Loomis and Helena G. Allen dubbed the "Longest Legislature". This session was dominated by political infighting between and within the four parties: National Reform, Reform, National Liberal and Independent; none were able to gain a majority. Debates heard on the floor of the houses concerned the popular demand for a new constitution and the passage of a lottery bill and an opium licensing bill, aimed at alleviating the economic crisis caused by the McKinley Tariff. The main issues of contention between the new monarch and the legislators were the retention of her cabinet ministers, since political division prevented Liliʻuokalani from appointing a balanced council and the 1887 constitution gave the legislature the power to vote for the dismissal of her cabinet. Seven resolutions of want of confidence were introduced during this session, and four of her self-appointed cabinets (the Widemann, Macfarlane, Cornwell, and Wilcox cabinets) were ousted by votes of the legislature. On January 13, 1893, after the legislature dismissed the George Norton Wilcox cabinet (which had political sympathies to the Reform Party), Liliʻuokalani appointed the new Parker cabinet consisting of Samuel Parker, as minister of foreign affairs; John F. Colburn, as minister of the interior; William H. Cornwell, as minister of finance; and Arthur P. Peterson, as attorney general. Exclusively palefaces in the posse, where are all the coons hiding? She chose these men specifically to support her pl an of promulgating a new constitution while the legislature was not in session.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 180: The proposed constitution (co-written by the Queen and two legislators, Joseph Nāwahī and William Pūnohu White) would have restored the power to the monarchy, and voting rights to economically disenfranchised native Hawaiians and Asians. Her ministers and closest friends were all opposed to this pl an; they tried unsuccessfully to dissuade her from pursuing these initiatives, both of which came to be used against her in the brewing constitutional crisis.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 182: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d0/USS_Boston_landing_force%2C_1893_%28PP-36-3-002%29.jpg/450px-USS_Boston_landing_force%2C_1893_%28PP-36-3-002%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 189: The same day, the Marshal of the Kingdom, Charles Burnett Wilson, was tipped off by detectives to the imminent pl anned coup. Wilson requested warrants to arrest the 13-member council of the Committee of Safety, and put the Kingdom under martial law. Because the members had strong political ties to United States Minister to Hawaii John L. Stevens , the requests were repeatedly denied by the queen´s cabinet, who feared that the arrests would escalate the situation. After a failed negotiation with Thurston, Wilson began to collect his men for the confrontation. Wilson and captain of the Royal Household Guard Samuel Nowlein had rallied a force of 496 men who were kept at hand to "protect" the queen. Marines from the USS Boston and two companies of US sailors landed and took up positions at the US Legation, the Consulate, and Arion Hall. The sailors and Marines did not enter the palace grounds or take over any buildings, and never fired a shot, but their presence served effectively in intimidating royalist defenders. Historian William Russ states, "the injunction to prevent fighting of any kind made it impossible for the monarchy to protect itself". Paljon se olisi kannattanutkin jenkki tykkivenedipl omatian tuntien.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 195: Cleveland sent the issue to the Congress, stating, "The Provisional Government has not assumed a republican, or other constitutional form, but has remained a mere executive council, or oligarchy, without the consent of the peopl e (who fortunately have no right to vote anyway)". She defended her action by showing that, out of a possible 9,500 native voters in 1892, 6,500 asked for a new Constitution. The queen changed her position on the issue of amnesty, and on December 18, Willis demanded the provisional government reinstate her to the throne, but was refused. Congress responded with a US Senate investigation that resulted in the Morgan Report on February 26, 1894. It found Stevens and all parties except the queen "not guilty", absolving them of responsibility for the overthrow. The provisional government formed the Republic of Hawaii on July 4 with Dole as its president, maintaining oligarchical control and a limited system of suffrage.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 201: For myself, I would have chosen death rather than to have signed it; but it was represented to me that by my signing this paper all the persons who had been arrested, all my peopl e now in trouble by reason of their love and loyalty towards me, would be immediately released. Think of my position, – sick, a lone woman in prison, scarcely knowing who was my friend, or who listened to my words only to betray me, without legal advice or friendly counsel, and the stream of blood ready to flow unless it was stayed by my pen.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 217: The annexation ceremony was held on August 12, 1898, at ʻIolani Palace, now being used as the executive building of the government. President Sanford B. Dole handed over "the sovereignty and public property of the Hawaiian Islands" to United States Minister Harold M. Sewall. The flag of the Republic of Hawaii was lowered and the flag of the United States was raised in its pl ace. Liliʻuokalani and her family members and retainers boycotted the event and shuttered themselves away at Washington Place. Many Native Hawaiians and royalists followed suit and refused to attend the ceremony.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 236: In April 1917, Liliʻuokalani raised her skirts at the American flag at Washington Place in honor of five Hawaiian sailors who had perished in the sinking of the SS Aztec by German U-boats. Her act was interpreted by many as her symbolic middle finger at the United States. Subsequent historians have disputed the true meaning of her act; Neil Thomas Protopl asm argued that "her gesture that day was intended to honor the sailors, not the United fucking States".
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 240: Educated by American Protestant missionaries from a young age, Liliʻuokalani became a devout Christian and adherent to the principl es of Christianity. These missionaries were largely of Congregationalist and Presbyterian extractions, subscribing to Calvinist theology, and Liliʻuokalani considered herself a "regular attendant on the Presbyterian worship".
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 246: That first night of my imprisonment I found in my handbag a small Book of Common Prayer according to the ritual of the Episcopal Church. It was a great comfort to me, and before retiring to rest Mrs. Clark and I spent a few minutes in the devotions appropriate to the evening. Here, perhaps, I may say, that although I had been a regular attendant on the Presbyterian worship since my childhood, a constant contributor to all the missionary societies, and had helped to build their churches and ornament the walls, giving my time and my musical ability freely to make their meetings attractive to my peopl e, yet none of these pious church members or clergymen remembered me in my prison. Fuck them. To this (Christian ?) conduct I contrast that of the Anglican bishop, Rt. Rev. Alfred Willis, who visited me from time to time in my house, and in whose church I have since been confirmed as a communicant. But he was not allowed to see me at the palace. It just goes to show, doesn´t it?
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 250: The Queen was also remembered for her support of Buddhist and Shinto priests in Hawaii and became one of the first Native Hawaiians to attend a Buddha´s Birthday party on May 19, 1901, at the Honwangji mission. Her attendance in the celebration helped Buddhism and Shinto gain acceptance into Hawaiian society and prevented the possible banning of the two religions by the Territorial government. Her presence was also widely reported in Chinese and Japanese newspapers throughout the world, and earned her the respect of many Japanese peopl e both in Hawaii and in Japan itself, with the exception of Rei Shimura.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 252: Liliʻuokalani was an accompl ished author and songwriter. Her book Hawai´i´s Story by Hawai´i´s Queen gave her view of the history of her country and her overthrow. She is said to have pl ayed guitar, piano, organ, ʻukulele and zither, and also sang alto, performing Hawaiian and English sacred and secular music. In her memoirs she wrote:
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 254: To compose was as natural to me as to breathe; and this gift of nature, never having been suffered to fall into disuse, remains a source of the greatest consolation to this day.[…] Hours of which it is not yet in pl ace to speak, which I might have found long and lonely, passed quickly and cheerfully by, occupied and soothed by the expression of my thoughts in music.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 256: Liliʻuokalani helped preserve key elements of Hawai´i´s traditional poetics while mixing in Western harmonies brought by the missionaries. A compilation of her works, titled The Queen´s Songbook, was published in 1999 by the Queen Liliʻuokalani Trust. Liliʻuokalani used her musical compositions as a way to express her feelings for her peopl e, her country, and what was happening in the political realm in Hawaiʻi. One exampl e of the way her music reflected her political views is her translation of the Kumulipo, the Hawaiian creation chant passed down orally by her great grandmother Alapaiwahine. While under house arrest, Liliʻuokalani feared she would never leave the palace alive, so she translated the Kumulipo in hopes that the history and culture of her peopl e would never be lost. The ancient chants record her family´s genealogy back to the origin story of Hawaiʻi.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 258: Imprisoned in the ʻIolani Palace, she was denied literature and newspapers, essentially cutting her off from her peopl e, but she continued to compose music with paper and pencil while she was in confinement. Another of her compositions was "Aloha ʻOe", a song she had written previously and transcribed during her confinement. In her writings, she says,
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 263: Captain Julius A. Palmer Jr. of Massachusetts was her friend for three decades, and became her spokesperson when she was in residence at Boston and Washington, D.C., protesting the annexation of Hawaiʻi. In the nation´s capital, he estimated that she had 5,000 visitors. When asked by an interviewer, "What are her most distinctive personal graces?", Palmer repl ied, "Above everything else she displ ayed a disposition of the most Christian forgiveness." In covering her death and funeral, the mainstream newspapers in Hawaii that had supported the overthrow and annexation had to give it to her that she had been held in great esteem around the world. In March 2016, Hawaiʻi Magazine listed Liliʻuokalani as one of the most influential women in Hawaiian history. She sounds like a pretty good woman all things considered.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 300: "Former Queen Renounces Her Claim to the Throne of the Hawaiian Islands. She and Her Peopl e Satisfied With the Government Given by the United States. " San Francisco Call. Vol. 100, no. 34. July 4, 1906. p. 3. ISSN 1941-0719. OCLC 13146227. Retrieved March 20, 2020 – via California Digital Newspaper Collection.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 313: Twombly, Alexander Stevenson (1900). Hawaii and Its Peopl e: The Land of Rainbow and Palm. New York: Silver, Burdett and Company. ASIN B00AVJ4Y7A. OCLC 16331055.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 349: A Hawaii newspaperman born in Oromo, Maine 1871. In 1915, Farrington organized the Honolulu Ad Club. One of his invited guest speakers was Warren Harding, a Republican Senator from Ohio. Farrington introduced Harding as "the future president of the United States." Harding repl ied that if Farrington´s prediction came true, he would name Farrington governor of the Territory of Hawaii. Three months after taking office as U.S. President in 1921, Harding fulfilled his promise, appointing Farrington as the Territorial Governor of Hawaiʻi. His tenure was controversial, as he followed the previous Governor in favouring the Whites.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 352: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/de/3/38/Shaka_zulu.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 355: 1986 entstand die erste von zwei Staffeln der Fernsehserie Shaka Zulu, die auf dem gleichnamigen Roman von Joshua Sinclair basiert, der seinerseits auf die mündlich überlieferte Geschichte der Zulu zurückgriff. Die Serie war umstritten, weil sie an südafrikanischen Schaupl ätzen gedreht worden war, während das damalige Apartheidregime noch weltweit boykottiert wurde. Shaka Zulu wurde in Deutschland 1986 vom ZDF ausgestrahlt, 1996 vom Berliner Lokalsender Puls TV und seit 2002 mehrmals auf Premiere Serie.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 366: Kahvi oli hyvää vaikkei niin täyteläistä kuin se jota yleensä juon. Clarissen maitomunat lupasivat jotain parempaa. Samoin söpö rako hampaiden välissä. Olenko minä teistä roisto tässä pelissä? Iso paha maanomistaja, verenimijä? Asia ei varmaankaan ole niin yxinkertainen, sanovat Rei ja CIA-mies yhdestä suusta. Sokeripl antaasien aikaan ei ollut niin paljon irtolaisia, kaikki mutiaiset olivat kotureita ja loisia. Rei tunsi jotain kovaa hameen alla. Se oli vihkisormus. Tiesin hänen ajattelevan samaa kuin minä, nim. nussintaa. Michaelin "matkapuhelin" alkoi taas väristä lantiotani vasten.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 374: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/61/Rashomon_poster.jpg/440px-Rashomon_poster.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 437: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/en/a/ad/Warner_Oland.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 444: Lopuksi on kulttuurin omaksumisen miinakenttä. Havaijilaiset jumalat eivät kuulu meille kaikille, itse saaret varastettiin, ja Amerikan monimuotoisimman osavaltion rotu- ja etniset rajat ovat edelleen lujasti puolustettuja. On havaijilaisia paikkoja, joihin haole-kirjoittajien ei pitäisi uskaltaa, varsinkaan ne meistä, jotka ovat "mantereelta". (Sana "manner" havaijilaisille viittaa nykyään impl isiittiseen paremmuuteen "saariin" nähden. Ja mixi juuri se manner on "manner," kerta saari on keskellä tyyntä valtamerta? Kysy konkistadoreilta.)
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 450: Jackie Chan (Yuen No 7) oli yksi mestari Yu Jim Yuenin seitsemästä pienestä omaisuudesta, ja kun häneltä kysyttiin hänen tunnetuimmasta oppilaistaan, sanoi, että Jackie "ei ollut yksi parhaista, mutta tuhmin kyllä." Kiinan draamaakatemia (kiina: 中國戲劇學院) oli Peking-oopperakoulu Kowloonissa Hongkongissa. Charles Chan (18. joulukuuta 1914 – 26. helmikuuta 2008) ja Lee-lee Chan (1916 – 28. helmikuuta 2002) olivat näyttelijä/ohjaaja/laulaja Jackie Chanin vanhempia. Tämä on eri Charlie Chan kuin Draxin henchman Bond pl äjäyxessä Moonraker albumissa 221 .
xxx/ellauri397.html on line 38: Ostentatio genitalium play:none">Iltapäivä-ihinää
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 38: Kauppiaan tarina play:none">Anglosaxintaa
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 68: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 75: ploads/2014/03/80114697_95762c.jpg?w=740&h=" height="300px" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 77: ploads/2014/03/neanderthal1.jpg?w=740&h=" height="450px" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 78: ploads/2014/03/neanderthal-female.gif?w=740&h=" height="450px" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 96: Sillä oli tammiarkussa tämmöinen napapaita ja minihamonen pl us pikkulapsen luuranko. Foul pl ay saattoi olla kyseessä.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 101: ploads/2020/05/neanderthal-woman-7.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 102: ploads/2020/05/neanderthal-woman-9.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 103: ploads/2020/05/neanderthal-woman-11.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 104: ploads/2020/05/neanderthal-woman-12.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 105: ploads/2020/05/neanderthal-woman-13.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 106: ploads/2020/05/neanderthal-woman-14.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 107: ploads/2020/05/neanderthal-woman-15.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 108: ploads/2020/05/neanderthal-woman-17.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 109: ploads/2020/05/neanderthal-woman-18.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 123: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/5/57/Chaucer_manuscrit_portrait_%28d%C3%A9tail%29.jpeg/380px-Chaucer_manuscrit_portrait_%28d%C3%A9tail%29.jpeg" height="600px" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 139: involved poetry. He would expl ore an author's
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 188: pl aintive note of much of his poetry. "A voice
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 209: simpl icity or with a severity a serious
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 217: He considered the most important criteria used to judge the value of a poem were "high truth" and "high seriousness". By this standard, Chaucer's Canterbury Tales did not merit Arnold's approval. According to Arnold, Homer is the best model of a simpl e grand style, while Milton is the best model of severe grand style. Dante, however, is an exampl e of both. Even Chaucer, in Arnold's view, in spite of his virtues such as benignity, largeness, and spontaneity, lacks seriousness. Burns too lacks sufficient seriousness, because he was hypocritical in that while he adopted a moral stance in some of his poems, in his private life he flouted morality.
Arnold believed that a modern writer should be aware that contemporary literature is built on the foundations of the past, and should contribute to the future by continuing a firm tradition. Quoting Goethe and Kuckuksuhr in support of his view, he asserts that his age suffers from spiritual weakness because it thrives on self-interest and scientific materialism, and therefore cannot provide noble characters such as those found in Classical literature.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 219: In The Study of Poetry, (1888) which opens his Essays in Criticism: Second series, in support of his pl ea for nobility in poetry, Arnold recalls Sainte-Beuve's repl y to Napoleon, when latter said that charlatanism is found in everything. Sainte-Beuve repl ied that charlatanism might be found everywhere else, but not in the field of poetry, because in poetry the distinction between sound and unsound, or only half-sound, truth and untruth, or only half-truth, between the excellent and the inferior, is nonexistent.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 221: In The Study of Poetry he no longer uses the acid test of action and architectonics. He became an advocate of 'touchstones'. 'Short passages even single lines,' he said, 'will serve our turn quite sufficiently'. Some of Arnold's touchstone passages are: Helen's words about her wounded brother, Zeus addressing the horses of Peleus, suppl iant Achilles' words to Priam, and from Dante; Ugolino's brave words, and Beatrice's loving words to Virgil.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 225: For all his championing of disinterestedness, Arnold was unable to practise disinterestedness in all his essays. In his essay on Shelley particularly he displ ayed a lamentable lack of disinterestedness. Shelley's moral views were too much for the Victorian Arnold. In his essay on Keats too Arnold failed to be disinterested. The sentimental letters of Keats to Fanny Brawne were too much for him.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 233: Arnold vigorously attacked the Nonconformists and the arrogance of "the great Philistine middle-class, the master force in our politics." He was dumb as a doorbell. There were few ideas he had not copied from someone else. "There are four, no five, peopl e, in especial," he once wrote to Cardinal Newman, "from whom I am conscious of having learnt – a very different thing from merely receiving a strong impression – learnt habits, methods, ruling ideas, which are constantly with me; and the four are – Goethe, Wordsworth, Sainte-Beuve, my dad, and yourself."
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 238: ply" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 271: pedes meos a lapsu. 7 pl acebo Domino in regione vivorum
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 272: “I shall pl ease the Lord in the land of the living”.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 290: in conjunction with sing or pl ay).
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 293: pl acebo of flaterye, That is to say, my lord or my
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 301: The medical use of pl acebo (“an inert medicament or preparation given for its psychological effect especially to satisfy the patient or to act as a control in an experimental series”) began to see use in the latter half of the 18th century.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 311: Eventually, Joyce´s bank account dried up. Her landlord sent her reminder letters. These papers, like the others, simpl y fell among the others scattered on her floor. They received no response. Finally, with more than six months of rent in arrears, the landlord obtained a court order to forcibly remove her from the premises. The bailiffs broke down the door and only then was her body discovered. By then, it was January 2006, more than two years after her death.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 315: This story is surprising for its social impl ications. It seems incomprehensible that entire years pass without anyone noticing the death of a person. However, these types of stories happen frequently. Chances are you'll have a story similar to Joyce Vincent's. And they are all the same.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 345: Keturi oli työtä vieroksuva boheemi, itsestään varma kepl ottelija, jonka vuokrat olivat maksamatta aina vuodesta -37. Isännöitsijä Perttuli Pihi ja ulosottomies Möhky yrittivät epätoivoisella vimmalla periä rästissä olevia vuokria ja muita maksamattomia laskuja Isaskarilta, siinä tietenkään koskaan onnistumatta. (Isaskarin mielestä ulosottomies Möhkyn etuniminä olisi pitänyt olla Sulo Otto Mies.)
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 349: Samuel Väsy puolestaan on arkkityyppi suomalaisesta perheenisästä tuon ajan suomalaisessa arjessa. Sylvi on Samuelin vaimo ja lapset ovat vauvaikäinen Susanna sekä Helpertti ja Vilpertti, joita naapurit kutsuvat yhteisnimellä Tupl avahinko ja jotka ovat täynnä uteliaisuutta, mielikuvitusta, vastentahtoista koulunkäyntiä ja Hesan slangia.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 371: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/be/Tapani-Kansa-1968.jpg/500px-Tapani-Kansa-1968.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 375: Eric Trump sanoo Harrya ja Megania hovin mätämunixi, jotka jenkit mielellään palauttaisivat emäsaarelle. Donald väittää prinsessa Dianan suukotelleen sen persettä. Dianan veli vastaa Lady Din pitäneen Donia pahempana kuin peräaukon haavauma. Mitä se kyllä onkin. Että tätä tasoa on anglosaxien huipputason dipl omatia. Kiitos somen tietysti.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 386: Senaste nyheterna från Expressen. Text: Louise Lennartsson. Polis larmades på måndagen till Ikea i Älmhult efter att två kunder börjat bråka om ett kylskåp. – En man i 60-årsåldern köpte och hämtade ut ett kylskåp när en annan man kom fram och sa att det var hans kylskåp, säger Rickard Lundqvist vid polisen. Den andra mannen, som är i 50-årsåldern, lastade på kylskåpet på en vagn och gick i väg. – Målsägande följde sedan efter honom tills vi var på pl ats. Kylskåpet är nu åter i 60-åringens ägo. En anmälan om ofredande är upprättad.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 38:
FINNISH MEMBERS GET HARD!! play:none">Skeidaa netistä
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 39: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 74: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 87: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 116: Suomen presidentti Stubbels vastasi iskuihin Venäjän lentokentälle Olenyalle: Meidän on hyväksyttävä, että sota lähestyy meitä. The toothy Finnish president said that Finns should accept the fact that the war will come closer to Finland's borders, as "it is not that far to fly from Helsinki to Kyiv". 2000km from Ukraine to Murmansk is too much for drones, they must have started somewhere closer by: Norway, Sweden, Finland or Russia. "We have to accept the fact that Ukraine has to use all their assets to win this war, and this also means various strikes. So Russia too will continue to launch hybrid strikes," Stubb commented. We have to accept that as well. We have to accept that these goddamn simian idiots react to global warming by flaring up a harmaggeddon war of all against all. Mutta voimme ize valita millä arvokkaalla tavalla me hyväxymme sen. Ottaa oravahampaisesta presidentistä mallia. Hän on hyväxynyt että hän on ruma kalkkuna. Hyväxyn. Kiitos. Hän on tyhmä kuin ladonovi mutta ilkeämpi. KZ:n käynyt Benjamin Franklin antaa apl odeja luukasana.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 143: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/4f/Battle_of_Gangut-Bakua.jpg/600px-Battle_of_Gangut-Bakua.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 162: Elämä on jatkuvaa taistelua mielihyvän ja kivun -- ja ymmärryxen ja hämmennyxen - välimailla. Karvanpoisto maxoi tupl asti enemmän kuin USAssa, mutta eipä tarvinnut maxaa tippiä. Puolikuivurina olen lujasti karvaisempi kuin märkyrit, ja vaha tartutti paxut reiteni toisiinsa. Läski Alex pääsi näkemään että pikkuhousuissani oli mönjää. Rikalla oli letit ja vielä lyhkäsempi hame kuin minulla. Rikan letit polvisukat ja lyhyt hamonen eivät peittäneet sen ajeltua vekkiä. Mietin mitä joku muu ajattelee minusta.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 167: Pornography laws relating to children do not cover manga, anime, or virtually created content, allowing games such as RapeLay, in which the pl ayer stalks and attempts to rape a single mother and her two school-age daughters. But they are probably adults who are wearing uniforms... they call it JK business but they are probably pretending to be schoolchildren. In Tokyo’s schools there’s no sex education. You can’t mention ‘intercourse’ or ‘sex.´ Teenage girls sell their unwashed uniforms, underwear and swimwear.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 172: Samma på svenska: En man har smygfotat tvåhundra skolflickor i full bestyr. Flickorna var påklädda, men bilderna manipulerades för att få dem synas nakna, skrevs ut, pl astades in och användes för att onanera till. Förloppet filmades och delades sedan med flera andra personer. Mannen har via ett anonymt Instagramkonto sökt kontakt med flickorna. Han har sedan filmat sig själv när han onanerat till materialet. Många var förstås ledsna, men många också lättade, säger Elisabeth Massiv Fritz, som företräder 164 av brottsoffren. Nu döms han för grovt barnpornografibrott till två års fängelse. ”Det är alldeles för låga straff”, skriver målsägandebiträdet Elisabeth Massiv Fritz till Aftonbladet.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 268: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/a/a2/Charles_Augustin_Sainte-Beuve.jpg/380px-Charles_Augustin_Sainte-Beuve.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 419: The Sayings Gospel Q is notable for lacking an account of Jesus' death. It is surprising that one early Christian document is apparently so indifferent to an event which pl ays a profound role in others (e.g., Romans, Mark). Maybe it wasn't so notable after all. And of course there are only rather short quotes from the cross (Sorry but these guys haven't got a clue, John this is your mom, mom this is your son John, Welcome to dine with me upstairs after these messages, lama sabakhthani, I hereby give up my ghost, anything else?) Seneca was Christ's contemporary and Epictetus 20 years younger. These kind of snappy quotes were much in vogue then.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 427: - Joo se on 1 monista tän pl otin heikkouxista.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 432: Savior: Despite the fact that the Tanakh provides the record of God's deliverance of His peopl e, the word moshia' (a participial form of the verb yasha, to deliver or to save) does not occur with great frequency in the Scriptures (it appears nearly half of the time in the latter part of the book of Isaiah).
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 434: For the Jew, Hamoshia´ is a this-worldly, temporal leader who would rescue corporate Israel from her enemies and make the nation great in all the earth. This (among other reasons) expl ains why the Jewish peopl e tend to reject Jesus as their Savior. From their point of view Jesus did not rescue corporate, national Israel from her enemies nor set up the kingdom of David.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 479: Alter wrote: The Gospels do not record any historical words attributed to Jesus that demonstrated that he conceived of his death as a propitiatory sacrifice to save mankind from its sins! Why then did Jesus not once, during his ministry, either in private to his discipl es, as recorded in the Gospels or as part of his public teaching, ever announce indisputably and unequivocally a divinely ordained scheme for the redemption of mankind? If the salvation of the world was at stake, as Christians proclaim, would it not have been reasonable, in pl ain and unequivocal terms, to have declared this pl an to those whose benefit it was supposedly intended? (p. 77)
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 481: This is massively untrue. Here’s a friendly suggestion to Mr. Alter (from one apologist to another): you would do well to refrain from using universal negatives and sweeping statements (“do not record any“ / “not once . . .”). It leaves you open to being definitively and easily refuted. All your opponents have to do is produce a single counter-exampl e, and your assertion is nullified. As it is, I will produce many NT passages that contradict your claim.
xxx/ellauri407.html on line 38: UROLOGIN UUTISIA play:none">Lisää skeidaa netistä
xxx/ellauri407.html on line 46: play:block;margin:0 auto" alt="xxx" />
xxx/ellauri407.html on line 69: Gather your favorite peopl e (Kevin)
xxx/ellauri407.html on line 80: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 41: TIKARI LIHAAN
play:none">Hammastahnaa tuubiin
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 117: English speakers owe the word Laodicean to Chapter 3, verses 15 and 16 of the Book of Revelation, in which the church of Laodicea is admonished for being "neither cold nor hot, . . . neither one nor the other, but just lukewarm" in its devotion. By 1633, the name of that tepid biblical church had become a general term for any half-hearted or irresolute follower of a religious faith. Since then, the word’s use has broadened to cover flimsy political devotion as well. For exampl e, in comparing U.S. presidents, journalist Samuel Hopkins Adams compared "the fiery and aggressive [Theodore] Roosevelt" to "the timorous Laodicean [Warren] Harding." My penis sure does not look Laodicean in the snapshot (above), but in actual fact it had to be supported by hand (left). Comme un pneu de vélo où il y a un trou.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 136: This essay assembles the “Bolovian Epic” from the Columbo and Bolo verses and nonsense letters that T.S. Eliot wrote over a period of eighteen years (1910–1928). Such an aggregation is made possible by the publication of excised poems from the “Waste Land” Notebook and Volumes I–IV of The Letters of T.S. Eliot. Rather than seeing individual parts of the epic as simpl y obscene, I interpret the whole project and its contexts as grounded in his appreciation for the primitive and a critical disdain for the so-called civilized. Eliot invents a composite race of peopl e, the Bolovians, whose influence on modern times includes racy behavior, religious affinities, and bowler hats. Understanding this bawdy, blue, or nonsense material contributes capitally to previous scholarship defaming Eliot's moral and cultural values.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 144: The Bolovian verses carry much critical baggage. To Conrad Aiken, they are “hilariously naughty parerga” or “admirable stanzas” (March 22). Ezra Pound calls them “chançons ithyphallique” (IMH xvi). Bonamy Dobrèe claims, “They are part of an elaborated joke, nurtured through years. It is about some primitive peopl e called the Bolovians, who wore bowler hats, and had square wheels to their chariots” (Tate 73). Subsequent descriptions are equally diverse, ranging from “pornographic doggerel” (Thorpe) to “scabrous exuberances” (Ricks xvi). One critic says they have “a surprising racial, even racist, focus” (Cooper 66). Another claims “these poems comically and obscenely portray the history of early European expansion as an orgy of uncontrollable desire and deviant sexuality” (McIntire 283). Pornoa mikä pornoa. Eliot borrows generously from common bawdy songs and joins a long list of classical writers who indulge in sexual, obscene, erotic, bawdy, scatological, and otherwise blue verse.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 148: The Bolovian verses, nevertheless, are offensive to many. Eliot’s “Triumph of Bullshit” was one of the poems that Lewis had rejected for publication. Lois Cuddy opines that “Eliot’s pornographic verses in an ‘epic’ about ‘King Bolo and His Great Black Kween’ indicate the extent and depth of his racial/sexual stereo- types and eugenic prejudices.” They are written from his own “sense of emptiness,” “puritanical principl es,” and “sexual repressions.” Furthermore, these poetic vulgarities displ ay Eliot’s acceptance of sexual stereotypes related to black men and women (229). Yet a look at the contexts of these poems, both as “nonsense” for friends and as reflections on the compl exities of culture, reveals an earnest belief in the value of the “primitive mind” and even a reversal of “sexual stereotypes related to black men and women.” The man with the prodigious bolo is not King Bolo but sephardic Cristoforo Columbo who regrettably "found" America. “Eliot is today being refashioned as a prescient and extraordinarily sensitive mediator of the major currents of twentieth century cultural and technological change” (Murphet 31).
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 176: But are they worth reading? Does a little ‘bolo’ go a long way? a New York Times reporter asked Anthony Julius, the litigation lawyer specializing in anti-defamation and anti-Semitism. His doctoral dissertation, charging Eliot with antiSemitism, resulted in the notorious publication of T.S. Eliot, Anti-Semitism and Literary Form. ‘‘They are not worth reading,’’ Mr. Julius said. ‘‘They tap, in the most puerile way imaginable, racist fantasies of the sexual superiority of blacks’’ (Lyall). Here is an exampl e of feeling the elephant without contact, because if he had read the verse, he would see that Columbo the Jew was the one with the biggest cock. “And he refuses to acquit Eliot of anti-Semitism in this case merely because the poet has managed to be superior to the black bigotry his poem evokes” (Menand).
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 186: Tom of New England oli naisten kasvattama mammanpoika kuten Coriolanus Shakespearessa, sen tautta naiset näytti siltä hampaattomilta jättikidoilta. Ihmisenä Tom oli laimea kuin kraanavesi. Perheen vaakuna oli norsun pää kärsineen, as researched by Walter Graeme Eliot in 1887 (W. Eliot 8). Eliot expl ains himself in his 1923 essay, “The Beating of Meat”: Primitive man beat the meat and then found a reason for it. Modern man has many reasons, but he has lost the meat. Later in The Use of Poetry and the Use of Criticism he states, “Poetry, I dare say, begins with a savage beating meat in the jungle” (95).
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 188: Whether “bolo” means tool, penis, ball, or balls, it is easy to see how Eliot enjoyed the double entendres. Eliot may have may have meant many things when he wrote “BULL” next to Hegel’s comment on the “sincerity of the German peopl e” (IMH 308). But the salient meaning of “bolo” is that of a meat knife, a phallic weapon, used in making love. For exampl e, “Bolomen surprised an American outpost near Guagua, killing two privates” (“bolomen”). Or the bolo is “a very beautiful specimen of that curious weapon of war which has figured so often in the official reports of the war in the Philippines” (“specimens”). Even President Theodore Roosevelt received a bolo knife from the “bad Dattos” of the Moroe tribes.” This “bad Datto” or chieftain confesses, “I have fucked three peopl e with this bolo, but now I have no further use for it. I am under American rule and intend to be peaceful” (“President Greatly Pleased” 5). “Then brownie got out his bolo and set to work. . . .” (“Brownie”)
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 212: Pound was teasing Eliot, because Bishop balked at publishing the “Waste Land” for the high brow Vanity Fair. Eliot repl ies the next day reporting:
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 221: ‘The stars and stripes streamed overhead, & the band began to pl ay;
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 228: ploads/2019/08/img_192.jpg" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 243: Marja Palmer Lundista sums it up rather neatly: The sexual undertone in the early "Love Song" runs through Eliot's poetry between 1910 and 1925, gaining greater emphasis in The Waste Land and The Hollow Men . The agony and distress associated with sexual matters pl ay a vital role in his early poems, a circumstance which has not always been fully recognized. Erotic concerns and preoccupations fill the lives of the main "characters" in this poetry, men and women alike. However, experiences of this kind are unsettling, and any attempt at a dialogue between the sexes is bound to fail. In each of the four collections, the theme of relationships between men and women indicates a step further downwards into isolation. There is an afflicting want of any feelings of love and tenderness - only a mechanized sexuality is left, stripped of all its generative force and with sterility and impotence as the consistent, final result.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 252: Brittirottasarja tosiaan, syviä tuntemuxia, my foot. Syöpään kuollut kitaristi narsisti twotimer pedo iskä oli vaan tollanen "compl icated." Taas tää klisheexi muodostunut klaanimeemi et poliisista 5, ne ei pysty mihkään, oman käden oikeus rulaa kuin ennen Hammurabia. Venevajan takana vahingossa nussitun abortilta pelastetun teinivauvan nimexi sopis vaikka Hope. Jos isä selviää Ember hommaa sen vankilaan. Juurikin näin. Varmaan tää anglosaxien moraalinen alamäki alkoi kasarilla Reaganin ja The Witchin toimesta. Vaikka omanvoitonpyyntisiä konniahan on anglot olleet aina, imperialisteja. Ja nyt koittaa Suomen oikeisto apinoida The Witchiltä vesihuollon yxityistämistä. Ei helvetti, lähetäppä Putin sinne muutama V2 nuketti!
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 279: Gustave Kahn heaped praise on Aitzik Feder, Ukrainan juutalaiselle maalarille jonka Pétain kaasututti. Ortodoxijuutalaisten kännyköistä ei pääse nettiin eikä niillä voi textata. Toisaalta puhelujen hinta on 1/5 normaalista. “You pay less and you’re pl aying by the rules,” Mr. Pinczower, 39, said. “You’re using technology but in a way that maintains religious integrity." Some 60 percent of ultra-Orthodox men do not work regular jobs, preferring religious study.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 285: This article is more than 9 years old: New edition of TS Eliot poetry challenges perceptions of his sexuality. "I love a tall girl. When she sits on my knee/ She with nothing on, and I with nothing on/ I can just take her nippl e in my lips / And stroke it with my tongue,” he writes, in a poem titled How the Tall Girl and I Play Together. In another poem, Eliot – who took a vow of chastity in 1928 after being confirmed into the Church of England – celebrates the “miracle of sleeping together as I touch the delicate down beneath her navel. Her breasts are like ripe pears that dangle Above my mouth Which reaches up to take them”. Euu, cringe.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 287: The poem is one of three that were discovered in notebooks handwritten for his second wife, Valerie, who had been his secretary and was nearly 40 years his junior. To the surprise of most who knew them – and particularly to two women who had been pursuing him for years – the coupl e married in 1957 when he was 68 and she was 30.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 434: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/1/12/Sweeney_Todd_Monterey.jpg/800px-Sweeney_Todd_Monterey.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 437: Benjamin Barker, a barber convicted wrongfully who after 15 years in an Australian penal colony escapes and returns to London using the new name Sweeney Todd, only to find that Judge Turpin, who is responsible for his conviction, has raped his young wife Lucy and adopted Todd's daughter Johanna. He at first pl ans to kill Turpin, but when his prey escapes, he swears vengeance on humanity in general and begins to slash his customers' throats. Se ei tiennyt ettei 2 pahaa pl ussaudu 1 hyväxi. Ei tule edes nolla, sillä teoilla ei ole etumerkkiä.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 447: The title of T. S. Eliot’s mock-heroic, modernist poem ‘Sweeney among the Nightingales’ perhaps has been taken from the poem ‘Bianca among the Nightingales’ written by Elizabeth Barrett Browning. As a matter of fact, the word “Nightingales” in the title stands for prostitutes. The poem is written on a mock-epic pattern following The Rape of the Lock by Alexander Pope; a trivial incident is given heroic significance in a satiric style. The “murderous” pl ot of the prostitutes against one of their customers or frequent visitors, Sweeney, is dealt with in a ludicrous way. The poem ends on a note of indignation and shame, lamenting the death of Agamemnon at his own wife Clytemnestra’s hands. ὤμοι, πέπληγμαι καιρίαν πληγὴν ἔσω. Voi ei, sain kohtalokkaan haavan sisään.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 467: The Jew of Malta (full title: The Famous Tragedy of the Rich Jew of Malta) is a pl ay by Christopher Marlowe, written in 1589 or 1590. The pl ot primarily revolves around a Maltese Jewish merchant named Barabas. The original story combines religious conflict, intrigue, and revenge, set against a backdrop of the struggle for supremacy between Spain and the Ottoman Empire in the Mediterranean that takes pl ace on the island of Malta. There has been extensive debate about the pl ay's portrayal of Jews and how Elizabethan audiences would have viewed it.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 474: Se kertoo selvästi Tompan aamukylvystä. Tomppa kellii lämpimässä vedessä ja hypelöi genitaaleja pl us anusta.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 476: A Jewish sage testified that he saw a woman in Rome who gave birth to a child and, after four months, went into labor and gave birth to another child. When they brought her before the Great Church for an expl anation, she declared that when she was in her fifth month of pregnancy, she cohabited with another and became pregnant by him; the first child, she said, is her husband’s and the second another’s. They accordingly stoned her. This was a case of superfetation.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 543: Analysis (ai): This poem satirizes religious rituals and the loss of spiritual meaning. It contrasts sharpl y with Eliot's earlier work, such as "The Love Song of J. Alfred Prufrock," which expl ored existential angst. The poem reflects the disillusionment and skepticism of the post-World War I era.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 545: Eliot's precise and ironic language undercuts the supposed sanctity of religious ceremonies. He depicts churchgoers as "caterpillars" and "sutlers," suggesting their superficial and self-serving behavior. The "superfetation" and "enervate Origen" reference theological controversies, adding to the poem's intellectual compl exity.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 555: These very prolific camp-following merchants of the Lord pass by the windows, before taking up the offering. Eliot goes on to describe a painting of the Baptism of Christ. The lines are full of impl ications. The simpl e humanity of the figure still reminds man of the redemption of his offences. In ironic contrast are pl aced several symbols of ugliness and degradation and compl icated parallel between the sterility of the worker bees and that of the "word" of sectarian theological argument. The neuter worker bees at least fertilize the flowers, and so may be said to perform a "blest office" in the scheme of Nature; but the same cannot be said of the "sapient sutlers of the Lord". The "sable presbyters" move like the "religious caterpillars" of the epigraph, who were more interested in getting his "piaculative pence" than in saving his soul. Finally, we have the degrading contrast between Sweeney wallowing in his bath and the figure of the baptized god.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 557: Critical Appreciation: The poem is compl ex, but has been called by one critic "rather cool juggling with religious history." The poem seems to take delight in the pl ay of words and in making obscurely learned references. Hyi Tom, ettes häpeä!
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 762: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/ca/Inf._10_Guglielmo_Girardi_e_aiuti%2C_Farinata_e_Cavalcanti%2C_1478_ca..jpg" />
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 870: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/6/6a/Henry_Holiday_-_Dante_meets_Beatrice.jpg/440px-Henry_Holiday_-_Dante_meets_Beatrice.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 918: Vuonna 491 eKr., kaksi vuotta Coriolanuksen voiton jälkeen volskilaisista, Rooma oli toipumassa viljan puutteesta. Sisiliasta tuotiin huomattava määrä viljaa, ja senaatti keskusteli tavasta, jolla se tulisi jakaa tavallisille. Coriolanus kannatti, että viljaa tulisi tarjota vasta, kun vuonna 494 eKr. ensimmäisestä secessio pl ebisistä johtuneet propl ebeilaiset poliittiset uudistukset kumotaan. Vittu mikä oikeistopaska! Sieti saada köniinsä! Ei ihme että Tory-Tomppa symppasi.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 920: Tästä pahastuneena Coriolanus loikkasi Volskeihin imigrantixi ja johti Rooman kostoretkeä. Coriolanus käski volskeja kohdistamaan kostoiskut pl ebeijeihin ja säästämään patriisilaisten omaisuutta. Saatanan gnagare!
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 924: Coriolanus oli seipäänheiluttajan noin viimonen murhenäytelmä. Siinä Marcius on avoimesti halveksivainen rotinkaisille ja sanoo, että pl ebeijiäijät eivät ole viljan arvoisia asepalveluksen puutteen vuoksi. No Tomppakaan ei kyllä kelvannut ruotuväkeen edes nostomiehenä.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 926: Persepää Coriolanus raivoaa ja hyökkää kansanvallan käsitettä vastaan. Hän vertaa sitä, että pl ebeieiden sallitaan saada valtaa patriisien yli "varisten nokkimiseen kotkia". Hahaa "mixi vanha kotka levittäisi siipiään." Votkan kuusen alta kaivamiseen tietenkin. Tomppa oli kaappijuoppokin. Siinäkin se muistutti Puovo Huovikkoa. Hyvä että volskit nirhasivat sen. Siis Coriolanuxen.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1002: He says to none, “You compl ete me.”
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1012: He needs no compl ement.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1024: He creates, not by conflict with supernatural forces, but with uncontested authority, “hovering over the face of the waters.” (Genesis 1:2) — ready to act and compl etely sovereign.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1028: “My counsel shall stand, and I will accompl ish all my purpose.” (Isaiah 46:10)
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1038: As I said, nowhere in the article does Stavrakopoulou claim that Mormons believe a pagan idol is our heavenly mother. All she says is that a statue of Asherah was found in the templ e, and that it was believed that she was considered the wife of El.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1048: His article clearly says that El is the God of Israel - and being a Mormon apologist he is expl aining Mormon doctrine.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1053: Being a Mormon apologist does not make him an authority on LDS doctrine. He is WAY out therein left base. The LDS peopl e worship the God of Israel, not a imaginary goddess.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1061: I am going to tell you how God came to be God. We have imagined and supposed that God was God from all eternity. I will refute that idea, and take away the veil, so that you may see. … It is the first principl e of the Gospel to know for a certainty the character of God and to know...that he was once a man like us.... (“King Follett Discourse,” Journal of Discourses 6:3-4 and Teachings of the Prophet Joseph Smith, 345-346, and History of the Church, vol. 6, 305-307)
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1067: And one last point - being a Mormon apologist actually does make him an authority on LDS doctrine, that's what an apologist is, that's what the word means. You really need to study the LDS doctrine, it's all there in black and white in multipl e books.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1069: And as you do study that doctrine pl ease keep in mind Proverbs 30:5-6 and Revelation 22:18-19
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1074: Doug is 100% on target with the god of Mormonism. Mormonism's god lives on a pl anet out near the star Kolob, and he was once a man who earned his way to godhood. The God of the Bible has always been God, and created man! And He is a spirit, never a man. He has no banana, and no nuts, and did not come from some Planet of the Apes, though he looks a little like us.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1082: First, the BOM has been proven too many times to be just a story made up by false prophet Smith, with close to half of it being nothing more than pl agiarized KJV. Second, even if Peterson declared the Asherah was God's wife, he has no authoritative standing to do so for the LDS.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1083: The LDS doctrine does NOT have Asherah being the wife of God. They do say God is married (with multipl e wives, actually), but not to Asherah. I have to agree with D. Porter here.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1105: Phil, Mormons are NOT monotheists because they have multipl e gods, and will have multipl e gods in exaltation.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1131: The ridiculous concept of the trinity was fabricated at the Council of Nicaea by evil men to obfuscate the pl ain and simpl e truths of the scriptures.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1137: The problem with the doctrine of the trinity is that less than educated peopl e like Joseph Smith, Charles Taze Russell, Brigham Young, Joseph Franklin Rutherford injected their own prejudices into the clear word of God and satan's pl an to undermine the Gospel spread
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1144: It is historical fact that there was debate and discussion regarding the trinity and other topics, and the concept of the trinity was finalized at the Council of Constantinopl e in 360 AD.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1145: The scriptures are very clear that there is a Father, a Son, and a Holy Spirit. It's very simpl e, fathers and sons are obviously different peopl e, how else can one come from the other's nuts and banana?
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1147: We could discuss history and scripture all day, but I'd simpl y ask you to answer any or all of the questions I posed above. Or at least answer the easiest one; who said from heaven that he was pl eased with his son when Jesus was baptized?
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1151: God the Father was rather pl eased with his son Jesus. as he was with Adam to start with. Jesus was rather pl eased with himself as well. But doesn't your bible contain the book of John? Never mind it is late gnostic pasteover. In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God.(John 1:1)
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1158: And by the way, the Council of Constantinopl e did not finalize the doctrine of the Trinity, it brought up the question if Pneumatomachians (those who adhere to Macedonianism) were heretics because the Doctrine of the Trinity had been in pl ace for almost 2 centuries at that point. This debate was finalized in the Council of Constantinopl e in 381. Our debate will be finalized a few lines further down, when I moderate you to hell.
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 40: SAATANAN KOMMARIT! play:none">Yrjön yököttävää
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 64: ploads/Anne-Frank-Fonds_Blog.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 72: Those Dutch doing the tripl e god's work spreading awareness about Mohammad. Aiša esiintyy lähteenä 1 500–2 400:ssa Muhammedista kertovassa hadithissa, mikä on moninkertaisesti enemmän kuin kenenkään muun vaimon kohdalla. Avioliitosta Aišan kanssa kertoo Ibn Hisham Profeetan elämäkerrassa.
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 111: Venäjän uutisia. 44 eri pl aneetan johtavaa ilmastotutkijaa on varoittanut Pohjois-Euroopan valtionpäämiehiä välittömästä katastrofista Atlantin valtameren keskeisten virtausten romahtamisen vuoksi. Avoin kirje julkaistiin Islannin ilmatieteen laitoksen verkkosivuilla.
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 112: Asiantuntijat kehottivat maiden johtajia ryhtymään välittömiin toimiin ja korostivat, että nykyisen levikkien heikkenemisen riskejä oli aiemmin suuresti aliarvioitu. Useat tutkimukset Atlantin meridionaalista kaatumiskiertoa (AMOC), joka sisältää Golfvirran ja kuljettaa lämpöä päiväntasaajalta pohjoiselle pallonpuoliskolle, ovat osoittaneet hidastuvan ilmaston lämpenemisen seurauksena. Tämä uhkaa syöstä pl aneetan ilmaston kaaokseen, koska AMOS:lla on tärkeä rooli maapallon ilmastojärjestelmässä. Asiantuntijoiden mukaan ensimmäinen ja voimakkain isku osuu Tanskaan (https://lenta.ru/tags/geo/daniya/) , Ruotsiin (https://lenta.ru/tags/geo/shvetsiya/) , Norjaan (https://lenta.ru/tags/geo/norvegiya/) , Suomeen (https://lenta.ru/tags/geo/finlyandiya/) ja Islantiin (https://lenta.ru/tags/geo/islandiya/) : Pohjois-Eurooppaan tulee merkittävää jäähtymistä ja äärimmäisten sääolosuhteiden tiivistymistä. Lisäksi Luoteis-Euroopan maatalous joutuu hyökkäyksen kohteeksi.
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 126: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/49/Tiitus-1931.jpg/375px-Tiitus-1931.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 172: Vijnana (Science) minus Jnana (Knowledge) of Dharma results in the ever increasing of selfishness and greed. It is on account of this, immorality and corruption, violence and sexual immorality are spreading like cancer and are threatening the health of our nation and of humanity. To this situation, the only remedy is the resurrection of the "Doctrine of Trivarga" which constitutes the Philosophy of our country - a philosophy universally appl icable.
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 191: pload/ar_1.5028046914839368,c_fill,g_faces,h_510,w_767/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/v1730193851/39-13708946720a943a130a" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 230: lost. You will not find peopl e to ask for
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 232: kiosks, because peopl e - there are none. And if
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 237: EXACTLY why I love Finland. The lack of peopl e,
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 242: years I was there. God I miss the pl ace!
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 244: Third Indian: If peopl e are paid equally like in
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 256: peopl e, only few 5 star hotels exist (we don’t
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 287: development between the two countries. Peopl e
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 296: cleaning etc help in your home you empl oy a
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 302: Living in Finland is not hard. Peopl e do many
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 306: Our workpl aces have the same so we are not
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 317: made to serve the so called upper caste peopl e.
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 337: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 342: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 41:
Beruriah play:none">Ortodoxiaa
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 43: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/c/cd/Beruriah.png" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 52: I’d love for anti-Semites to keep out of my vagina, but also, these stereotypes are just fucking wrong. Take note, peopl e: no shame = great sex. Except it is false to fact. Shame pl ays a big part in it.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 58: There are a bunch of Torah passages commanding men to make sure they sexually pl ease their wives in bed, in the verbal form of an enthusiastic yes! yes! As a sexual assault advocate, I was super disappointed to read this.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 61: Nevertheless, many Orthodox women feel conflicted about the extent to which Judaism is sex-positive. Yael, who poked a tent prop through Sisera's skull after a hasty lay, is one. “Some of those settings made it clear that as someone who looked like a woman, I was just a prop — not to be really seen or heard before or after copulation." Orthodox women and LGBTQ-identified peopl e feel marginalized in Orthodox communities.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 162: J.C. (pun intended) kuolaa petiitin jutkupillun perään, hän pitää naisista ketkä on lyhkäsempiä kuin hänen kyrpänsä. Kun työntää perille pullistuu kupl a ulos poskesta. Jew boy! Jew boy! Please crucify a goy! Mutta tokko Cullinanen kulli maistuu nannalta Nainin leskelle, sehän on nahkamuna! Ilman esinahkaa ei voi leikkiä nahat pois leikkiä. Kun hakku iskee vakoon, brittinaiset kuumuvat. Iltaisin kaivauxilla teltat huojuvat. John felt like an ass. One night he surprised Mrs. Son-of-a-Cod by a quick surprise entry from behind. She hesitated as if inviting him to try the front entrance for another round. But no, as I guessed, she wants a skinned glans. Can't J.C. convert and get circumcised? Tutustuit tähän juoxuhautaan ja mitä löysi hakkusi? Juutalaisen tytön. He needed her like a hole on top of his bell-end. Teinikokoinen Mrs. Pissaliisa muistuttaa ällistyttävästi tätä aserapaalua.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 166: Äveriäs jutkupohatta tulee tarkastamaan diggiä. Arkeologit sipisevät miten kätevimmin voisivat kusettaa tyyppiä. Mixi jenkit on aina tälläsiä ketkuja? "Paul Zodman will never know the difference." Vizi nää juutalaiset on pellejä, mutta niin on loputkin. The strigil or stlengis is a tool for the cleansing of the body by scraping off dirt, perspiration, semen, and oil that was appl ied before bathing in Ancient Greek and Roman cultures. Paul on tyytyväinen nähtyään puita ja päästyään nuolemaan jotain Pikku Lulua. Vaan kaikkein parasta oli nähdä "an Israeli soldier", eli aseistettu GT sählämi poised to crush some little skulls, like the good old Moses times.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 170: Yarmulke comes from joining two Hebrew words together, which were Yarei Malka, essentially meaning ‘fear of the king.’ They essentially mean the same thing, with the only difference being that the cap is called Kippah in the Hebrew language, and it is called Yarmulke in the Yiddish language. However, both of them refer to the same cap, which is worn above the head, specifically by peopl e who practice Judaism.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 180: pload/4/6/464909e29e.jpg" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 182: Anita Marks 2002 posed for Playboy in the middle of her career as a professional female football pl ayer. The University of South Florida graduate is now a sports radio host for the likes of CBS and ESPN. But did not show her centerfold that year.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 202: plicit.bing.net%2Fth%3Fid%3DOIP.Fm7-gPcmR2SfLlE-FnnrhgHaKt%26pid%3DApi&f=1&ipt=ee4349530150203810be7b41dd109d02d4cf66fb6468bcb3a72f243a80a05ffe&ipo=images" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 204: Barbie Benton 1970-75 never made it to the Playboy centerfold but pl ayboy Hugh Heffner left his semen pack into her hairy Jewish centerfold repeatedly. iuu (600×867)
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 211: Förstörelsen i Khan Yunis var total. Byggnad efter byggnad lades i ruiner enbart av israeliskt hämndbegär. När hans befälhavare sade till pl utonen att bränna ned det hus där de varit stationerade rann bägaren över. – Jag sade: ”Jag är inte redo att delta i det. Jag tänker inte förstöra ett hus tillhörande familjer som nu blir hemlösa”, sade en tidigare soldat i augusti. Israelska soldater pl undrade otaliga bostäder. Många tog ”souvenirer” från palestiniernas hus. Höga befäl officiellt tog avstånd från pl undring och liknande, men gjorde ingenting för att stoppa det.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 213: 28-årige Max Kresch tillbringade tre månader vid den israelisk-libanesiska gränsen innan han fick nog. Han uppger att många av hans kamrater drevs av en religiös fanatism. En soldat hävdade att det är en judisk religiös pl ikt att döda palestinier i Gaza – även barn. Eftersom de skulle växa upp till terrorister, förklarar Kresch. De små huvuden pä terroristerna är det bäst att krossa på stenarna när de är ännu spräckliga.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 234: Dominoiden asiakkaina on nykyisin Britannian huippupoliitikkoja ja liikemiehiä. Heidän kerrotaan puuhastelevan asianajajien, suurlähettiläiden, dipl omaattien ja poliitikkojen kanssa. Useimmat, mutta eivät kaikki, naispuolisten ammatillisten hallitsevien asiakkaiden asiakkaat ovat miehiä. Myös miehisiä ammatillisia hallitsevia yrityksiä on olemassa, ja ne palvelevat pääasiassa homomiesmarkkinoita. Ylläri. Sanallinen eroottinen nöyryytys, kuten pienen peniksen nöyryytys, on myös suosittua. Muita BDSM-toimintoja voivat olla erilaiset kehonpalvonnan muodot, kuten jalkojen palvonta, äässien palvonta, rintojen palvonta ja pillujen palvonta, "pakotettu" siveys, kukko- ja pallokidutus ja pillukidutus. Pakotettu siveys on ihan kamalinta.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 253: pl ayboy suit. They have the sturdy drive we
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 260: src="https://pornovideoshub.com/wp-content/upl oads/2018/03/gifMT-2.gif"
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 262: src="https://external-content.duckduckgo.com/iu/?u=https%3A%2F%2Ftse3.expl icit.bing.net%2Fth%3Fid%3DOIP.i4EYJxMuGXDRBJ7LxPcT1gHaJ_%26pid%3DApi&f=1&ipt=c623966bd6cb01a263b4d91408bf273d9c5db8e993ba8f01e26e9e2d4448f598&ipo=images"
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 265: plicit.bing.net%2Fth%3Fid%3DOIP.dBFK0WVi1HBOvOYIEmC6qAHaHN%26pid%3DApi&f=1&ipt=b4d97688732e4550ae1b7fbf8003dc0d6bac9592e7f1daee4462212201cb2b4c&ipo=images"
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 291: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/bb/Robert_Herrick_Hesperides.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 387: The leaves) her templ es I behung, lehtien) hänen kaikkeinpyhimpäänsä ripustin,
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 396: Such fleeting pl easures there I took Sellaisia ohikiitäviä nautintoja siellä sain
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 405: Myrtle the twigs were, merely to impl y Risut oli myrttiä, antaen ymmärtää:
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 483: plSUQSZ-f8hJUSDinDKaRQ/023/721/800/1280x720.c.jpg.v1693576930" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 495: sig bort från Gilead uppl ever Atwood nu att USA
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 517: böcker på torget där varenda exempl ar eldas
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 580: Dmitrij Peskov pl anerar inte Rysslands
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 631: pl aner som vi kan genomföra med Donalds hjälp.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 738: pyllistelyä. Rituals to pl acate angry forces.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 861: Tuommoinen pidentynyt pehmeähkö sämpylä saattaisi oikein ärsytettynä vielä pullahtaa uimahousuista. Toden totta! Kun näytin sille tuota venäläistä nekkua, Miisu ojentihe tupl asti pitkäkaulaisemmaxi päästäxeen lähentymään sitä! Mutta luurin päälle ei sentään sopisi ruikahtaa. (Kuva tahmaisesta mobiilista poistettu.)
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 885: Ei tää on jo kyllä niin skizoa että mielialan parannuxexi tähän vähän tällästä lolitamaista kuvakerrontaa. Kaverilla on Udon mallinen Prinssi Rohkea-frisyyri, mutta nappinänni tyttönen on herttainen. Montakohan rupl aa sekin tosta näytännöstä sai. Sitä kyllä mieluusti lähestyisi tolleen joka nurkasta ihan koko rahalla (jos olis kättä pidempää).
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 915: VIDEO
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 41: Аміна play:none">Puolikarkeaa
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 78: ploads/posts/2022-01/1641452394_51-ttelka-com-p-porno-20kh-godov-55.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 85: Samaan aikaan kun Bakussa pidetään all male paneelia ilmastorahoista, Azerbaizan ja Turkki kuskaa azerien öljyä Israeliin jossa sillä pariloidaan palestiinalaisia. To prevent collapse of Israel and the IDF, the United States is sending almost all its operational navy ships to protect Israel so that it can pursue its genocide in Gaza US Secretary Austin ordered the depl oyment of additional ballistic missile defense destroyer ships, fighter squadron and tanker aircraft, and several U.S. Air Force B-52 long-range strike bombers to the region. The morale of the IDF is collapsing after a year of being unable to defeat an irregular army with homemade weapons and a growing awareness that they are now universally hated and despised - it is eating into their soul, if any. Hoohoo jaajaa, toiveajattelua Filistean puolelta.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 286: ploads/posts/2021-12/thumbs/1640234203_10-shpilivili-cc-p-porno-krasivie-pizdi-ukrainok-10.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 289: Trump ska enligt uppgift ha "varit intresserad" av framförallt två av punkterna i Zelenskys segerpl an. Den ena föreslår att stridserfarna ukrainska soldater efter kriget ersätter de amerikanska trupper som i nuläget är stationerade i Europa. Det andra delen berör hur Ukrainas naturresurser kan delas mellan landets partners i väst. Donald Trump har varit tydlig med att han snabbt vill avsluta kriget, men exakt hur är ännu oklart.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 298: pl aneetan kauneimpia tyttöjä. On vaikea löytää miestä,
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 340: ploads/posts/2018-05/1525391802_03.jpg" width=100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 341: ploads/posts/2018-05/thumbs/1525391914_14.jpg" width=100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 342: ploads/posts/2018-05/thumbs/1525391899_16.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 344: ploads/posts/2018-04/thumbs/1524605406_16.jpg" width=100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 345: ploads/posts/2018-04/thumbs/1524605413_05.jpg" width=100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 346: ploads/posts/2018-04/thumbs/1524605369_04.jpg" width=100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 347: ploads/posts/2018-04/thumbs/1524605370_09.jpg" width=100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 349: ploads/posts/2018-04/1524688892_02.jpg" width=100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 350: ploads/posts/2018-04/1524688959_07.jpg" width=100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 351: ploads/posts/2018-04/1524688986_09.jpg" width=100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 352: ploads/posts/2018-04/1524688987_12.jpg" width=100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 356: ploads/posts/2019-04/1554145877_13.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 358: ploads/posts/2019-04/thumbs/fapabelno.net_155414470953.jpg" widyh="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 371: ploads/posts/2019-11/1573057835_21.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 373: ploads/posts/2019-11/1573057783_22.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 374: ploads/posts/2021-01/1610833150_blondinochka_vika_na_senovale_18_-_jerofotosessii_-_shnjagi_net.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 375: ploads/posts/2021-01/1610833162_pshenichnoe_pole_i_krasota_obnazhennogo_zhenskogo_tela_foto__ampquot.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 376: ploads/posts/2016-05/strasti-i-razvrat-v-pole_423.jpeg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 377: ploads/posts/2016-05/strasti-i-razvrat-v-pole_396.jpeg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 378: ploads/posts/2016-05/strasti-i-razvrat-v-pole_411.jpeg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 394: ploads/posts/2022-06/1654042285_5-pornofoto-xyz-p-porno-realnoe-golikh-ukrainok-chastnoe-8.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 395: ploads/posts/2022-06/1654042251_34-pornofoto-xyz-p-porno-realnoe-golikh-ukrainok-chastnoe-39.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 396: ploads/posts/2022-06/1654042281_35-pornofoto-xyz-p-porno-realnoe-golikh-ukrainok-chastnoe-40.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 398: ploads/posts/2022-06/1654042219_36-pornofoto-xyz-p-porno-realnoe-golikh-ukrainok-chastnoe-41.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 407: ploads/posts/2022-06/1654042250_48-pornofoto-xyz-p-porno-realnoe-golikh-ukrainok-chastnoe-57.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 408: ploads/posts/2022-06/1654042268_50-pornofoto-xyz-p-porno-realnoe-golikh-ukrainok-chastnoe-61.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 409: planetporno.top/upl oads/images/00/003/502/3502/original/14485349562551413605601415.jpeg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 419: ploads/posts/2023-12/1702022759_girla-me-p-porno-legkoe-nezhnoe-porno-36.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 421: ploads/posts/2023-11/1699800465_girla-me-p-porno-nezhnii-i-romantichnii-seks-13.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 423: ploads/posts/2023-12/1702022106_girla-me-p-erotika-40-godov-53.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 425: ploads/posts/2023-12/1702022012_girla-me-p-erotika-40-godov-45.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 427: ploads/posts/2023-11/1698800268_girla-me-p-erotika-70-letnikh-67.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 429: ploads/posts/2023-12/1702022030_girla-me-p-erotika-40-godov-50.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 431: ploads/posts/2022-06/1656450078_35-girla-me-p-porno-retro-erotika-50-godov-62.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 433: ploads/posts/2022-06/1656450059_28-girla-me-p-porno-retro-erotika-50-godov-54.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 492: The Philistines are rarely mentioned outside the Bible. They had funny hats and held their elbows up rather awkwardly. Goliath was possibly the most notorious Philistine. Goliath was said to be eight feet tall, with six fingers on each hand and six toes on each foot. Based on this Bible story, the evil Goliath, who was a Philistine, was stopped by the brave Israelite. Nevertheless, why was Goliath so massive? Where his parents giants, too? DNA would be able to reveal the truth. The earliest Philistines probably did come from pl aces like Greece, which, at the time, was undergoing a social collapse. They may have taken to the seas to try to escape political turmoil and perhaps large-scale persecution, not unlike refugees today. For exampl e, some deceased Philistines were buried with perfume jars under their heads. For a while, they may have had one of the most vibrant, thriving cultures in the entire Levant (the Middle East region that includes Syria, Palestine, Lebanon, and Jordan).
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 494: Like David and Goliath, the story of Samson and Delilah are well-known stories of right and wrong, good and evil, goys and jews. These findings help tell the story of the Philistines on their own terms, in a way that compl ements (rather than negating) what the biblical writers said about them. Think of them as ancient Vikings. According to the Bible, the Philistines were polytheists. Polytheist means you worship multipl e gods, unlike the Nazirite Samson. The biblical story of Samson suggests that he destroyed the templ e of Dagon in Gaza. Present-day Samsons specialize in childrens' hospitals.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 507: also pl ayed a role. It was during the late
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 520: of peopl es known collectively as the Sea
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 521: Peopl es, who helped bring an end to the Bronze
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 527: take many of the Sea Peopl es prisoners, it is
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 540: Philistine peopl e were somewhat unified by a
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 561: This passage impl ies that Ekron was the leading
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 584: The primary reason why the Philistines and Israelites were enemies was due to both peopl es desiring to put the Levant under their political hegemony. The Philistines got the upper hand first, but then the Israelites became the primary force in the region by the early tenth century. In the end, both sides were eventually defeated when the mighty Assyrian Empire overwhelmed the entire Levant and made them both vassals. In fact, a common insult, particularly during the Victorian Age, was to refer to someone as a Philistine. Philistine pottery was beautiful and practical.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 588: ploads/2019/07/shutterstock_1729426924.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 591: The Israelites wrote that the Philistine’s sacrificed their children. This may have happened, but we also see the graves of children with their hands lovingly folded and a layer of broken pottery meticulously arranged over their bodies. That compl icates the one-dimensional villains of Scripture. Like Philistine children shot with Israeli shrapnel on the Gaza strip.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 593: The patriarch Abraham lived several hundred years before the twelfth century (so he got there first, nyaah nyaah nyaah), and the biblical narrative attests that he and his sons had contact with the Philistines. There are several possible expl anations for this discrepancy. One is that another peopl e group was known as the Philistines, and the migrants from the Aegean who arrived in the twelfth century took on its moniker and called themselves Philistines. Another possible expl anation is that there was a steady flow of migrants from the Aegean, all of whom were related and called themselves Philistines.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 596: ploads/2017/01/david-and-goliath.jpg?w=768&h=576" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 599: The Philistines were first recorded by others between 1185-1152 BCE. The Peleset, as they were called by the Egyptians, were first depicted as captives on a wall relief at Medinet Habu during the reign of Ramesses III. The Peleset were one of the several groups commonly referred to as the Sea Peopl e that were part of a serious of events that lead to the Bronze Age Collapse. The Egyptians identified ten ethnic groups as raiders and pirates that came ashore to pl under during this tumultuous time. The Peleset were one of those peopl e. There were opportunistic mercenaries and desperate peopl e willing to take on the greatness of Egypt, but it was probably more compl ex. There were certainly also refugees looking for safety.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 722: El means "God" in the Ugaritic and the Canaanite languages. The literal meaning of Shaddai, however, is the subject of debate. Some scholars have argued that it came from Akkadian shadû ("mountain") or from the Hebrew verb shaddad שדד meaning "Destroyer". Shaddai may have also come from shad שד meaning mammary; shaddai is a typical Biblical Hebrew word (שדי). The pl ural (Shaddayim -- שדיים) is the typical Modern Hebrew word for human breasts in dual grammatical number.The Deir Alla Inscription contains shaddayin as well as elohin rather than elohim. Scholars translate this as "shadday-gods," taken to mean unspecified boobs, mountain or destroyer gods. A popular interpretation of the name Shaddai is that it is composed of the Hebrew relative particle she- (Shin pl us vowel segol followed by dagesh), or, as in this case, as sha- (Shin pl us vowel patach followed by a dagesh). The noun containing the dagesh is the Hebrew word dai meaning "enough, sufficient, sufficiency". However, Day's overview says a "rabbinic view understanding the name meaning 'who suffices' (Se + day) is clearly fanciful and has no support."
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 793: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/e/e7/Erect_penis_measurement.png/440px-Erect_penis_measurement.png" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 966: Kun kylmä sota päättyi Neuvostoliiton hajoamiseen vuonna 1991, Ukrainaan jäi muun muassa 1900 strategista ydinkärkeä sekä arviolta noin muutama tuhat taktista ydinasetta. Maa sinkoutui hetkessä maailman ydinaserikkaimpien valtioiden joukkoon. Kiova kuitenkin luovutti ydinasemateriaalin muodonmuutoksen kokeneelle Venäjälle vuonna 1996 vastineeksi Venäjän, Yhdysvaltojen ja Iso-Britannian antamista turvatakuista. Ukrainalaiset luopuivat tappavimmasta aseistuksestaan, ja muut maat lupasivat kunnioittaa Ukrainan valtion rajoja sekä poliittista itsenäisyyttä. Ukrainassa on kosolti ydinvoimaosaamista, ja tälläkin hetkellä lukuisia toiminnassa olevia ydinreaktoreita. Maalla on hallussaan arviolta noin 7 tonnia reaktoreissa käytettävää pl utoniumia, josta pystyttäisiin raportin mukaan rakentamaan satoja taktisia, usean kilotonnin ydinkärkiä. Vähän siinä kyllä kerkiäisi tulla holotna. Nyt Venäjän fokus on energiainfrastruktuurin tuhoamisessa, jotta ukrainalaisten talvesta tulisi mahdollisimman vaikea.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 42:
IANKAIKKISTA SUTTA play:none">Irtopäitä lentää
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 48: Yes, Russian peopl e working regular jobs live better than homeless peopl e in America living in the streets. But they don’t live anywhere as comfortable as Americans who work in the same type of jobs.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 77: pl anetar om det skulle bli trongt. Alevtina tutkii,
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 89: menneske og anna liv, som dyr og pl antar. Kanskje ting
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 151: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/04/V.S.Solovyov_1890s_photo_by_P.S.Zhukov.jpg/520px-V.S.Solovyov_1890s_photo_by_P.S.Zhukov.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 162: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/0f/Pasternak_fedorov.jpg/440px-Pasternak_fedorov.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 188: Friends-Workers"), in which he incited peopl e to revolt.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 192: my beloved peopl e." This note never reached anyone
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 216: a strong advocate of ancestor worship and saw peopl e's
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 218: value and was critical of individualism making peopl e
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 242: upl oading) to a group of male scientific thinkers of the
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 246: visions of escape from the body coupl ed with
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 252: principl es governing research on human subjects (see the
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 260: ploads/2020/09/header-susan-and-dog-1024-768x384.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 304: Det är bara att gratulera och tacka de fria västapornas ledare för att åthjälpa den invasiva apartens utrotning från pl aneten så snabbt som möjligt. Ingen vill ha dem här, kommenterar den resterande faunan (mestadels kor och kycklingar).
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 314: Dessutom är en stor portion av landets bäst tränade och bäst utrustade soldater inne i Ryssland och försöker hålla kvar de landområden de sedan i somras kontrollerar inne i Kursk, vilket gör att de inte kan stötta upp utsatta pl atser längs med fronten. Tanken med överraskningsoffensiven in i Ryssland var att Vladimir Putin skulle finna det helt oacceptabelt och då flytta trupper från fronten i östra Ukraina till Kursk för att ta tillbaka territoriet, det säger Marina Miron, doktor på krig vid King's College London, till Sky News. Det blev dock precis tvärtom. Ryssland verkar inte ha någon stress med att ta tillbaka Kursk och håller i stället de ukrainska elitsoldaterna fast utan möjlighet att varken accelerera eller att ta sig där ifrån.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 340: Det är svårt att inte tänka på Jesus Kristus när den svenska sexualuppl ysaren Inti Chavez Perez gör sig redo för sitt föredrag för 140 niondeklassare på tisdag morgon, i Grundskolan Norsen i Helsingfors.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 398: ploads/slider/cache/dce5c2b41269ece8cfbfb30b3b2d18fe/Inti-forelaser-for-elever-1200x600-1.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 404: ploads/2024/07/main-qimg-03f3515c3ca365e93bd81254e33e2ca5.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 411: Adnan Siddiqui comparing women to flies was bad, his non-apology is worse. Asfa Sultan Condoms. Welcome. After drawing heavy criticism for comparing women to flies, Adnan Siddiqui has said he “regrets” any unintended offence his words may have caused, because they were intended to be “humorous”. Despite Yasir’s attempts to divert the conversation, Siddiqui continued, asserting that women, like flies, tend to avoid men when chased but come running back when left alone. While humour has its pl ace in conversation and pop culture, it should never come at the expense of demeaning or objectifying others.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 422: One of our good friends who gave his life for Ukraine. The peopl e here will never surrender so I don't see a reason why we should.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 431: Poland is ready not only to defend its borders, but also to assist its NATO allies from the Baltic countries: Estonia, Lithuania, Latvia. Russian propagandists make frequent threats to Poland, reminding of the times when Russian tsars and then Stalin’s USSR were invading Polish territories, and claim that certain Polish lands were a “gift” to Poland from the USSR — which they threaten “to take back”. The Polish politicians take these threats seriously. They know the pattern: first propagandists prepare the population, and then Hitler sends the troops. So, the Polish military is making sure that Russia can never invade Poland. The cavalry is ready. The Poles still remember the Soviet occupation and the Russian atrocities. The Germans are on our side now. Never again. This is a war to end all wars. Elon Musk says that nuclear war is not as scary as peopl e think.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 452: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/4/4c/Gerusalemme_liberata_I_p008.png" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 454: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/a/ad/Gerusalemme_liberata_II_p008.png" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 483: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/7/7b/The_Rape_of_the_Sabine_Women.jpg" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 501: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/8e/Martin_Buber_and_Rabbi_Binyamin.jpg/440px-Martin_Buber_and_Rabbi_Binyamin.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 504: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/40/Louis-Jean-Fran%C3%A7ois_Lagren%C3%A9e_-_Marte_y_Venus%2C_alegor%C3%ADa_de_la_Paz%2C_Jean_Paul_Getty_Museum%2C_1770.jpg/800px-Louis-Jean-Fran%C3%A7ois_Lagren%C3%A9e_-_Marte_y_Venus%2C_alegor%C3%ADa_de_la_Paz%2C_Jean_Paul_Getty_Museum%2C_1770.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 512: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/2/2d/Flag_of_Finland_1918_%28state%29.svg/320px-Flag_of_Finland_1918_%28state%29.svg.png" />
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 560: ploads/2021/05/A-Spl ash-Of-Color-Can-Bring-Historical-Photos-Back-To-Life-Lifestyle-Humanity-Life-Is-Awesome-History-18.jpg?attachment_cache_bust=3672004&quality=85&strip=info&w=400" width="90%" />
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 42: Consummation of the Levirate play:none">Izesaastutusta
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 43: ploads/2015/08/tamar_and_judah_horace_vernet.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 44: Tamara Lund vilauttaa tupl a apelleen Juudalle polvea ja tissiä. Juuda tarjoaa Tamaralle sauvaansa juhlakunnossa. Leviraatti on pian täytetty ja viiru sinetöity esinahkavahalla. Ei mennyt siemen hukkaan tällä kokoonpanolla!
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 47: Résumé : Ce qu'il faut détruire dans l'homme, c'est sa propension à croire, son appétit de puissance, sa hantise d'un dieu. Il est impérieux, pour y parvenir, de faire à la paresse une pl ace parmi les vertus cardinales et au scepticisme parmi les églises et les polices. -- Cioran: Précis de décomposition
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 68: Mercy Nelson is a 17-year-old athlete who was sidelined for over a year with a knee injury and battled her way back to become a first team all-league basketball athlete and a second team all-league volleyball pl ayer for Rainier Christian High School. Her incredible story makes her the star of this month’s athlete comeback blog!
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 92: ploads/2017/09/51ykc0ayull.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 212: Niinpä juuri, Eemeli. Päivittäiset uutiset todistavat vahvasti että nyt on todella jo menty yli jonkin hulluuspandemian rajan. Apinalaumat kirkuvat ja kiehuvat ilmastopadassa kuin sammakot ja tekevät toisistansa veristä färssiä. Ainoa syy olla mukana on että ei ole muuta pl aneettaa minne painua. Sanon kuin Henry Melvillen Bartlet the scrivener: ‘I would prefer not to’.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 215: plomacy-in-the-middle-east/Moyen_Orient_Amarna_1-sm.webp" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 216: ploads/2016/10/syria500ad.jpg?lossy=2&strip=1&webp=0" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 218: pload/c_crop,h_970,w_1724,x_0,y_0/ar_1.7777777777777777,c_fill,g_faces,h_431,w_767/dpr_2.0/q_auto:eco/f_auto/fl_lossy/v1481729428/14-svyle-318493585163ad9a553" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 241: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b8/Andr%C3%A9_Malraux_1933.jpg/440px-Andr%C3%A9_Malraux_1933.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 267: Courage et peur, deux pôles d'une même maladie consistant à accorder abusivement une signification et une gravité à la vie... C'est le manque d'amertume nonchalante qui des hommes fait des bêtes sectaires : les crimes les pl us nuancés comme les pl us grossiers sont perpétrés par ceux qui prennent les choses au sérieux. Le dilettante seul n'a pas le goût du sang, lui seul n'est pas scélérat... (Cioran: Précis de décomposition)
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 273: With scandals reverberating throughout news outlets due to unconscionable behavior of pastors and priests within the Southern Baptist Church and Roman Catholicism, and the public repudiation of biblical theology by the Evangelical Lutheran Church of America, the once unquestionably trusted office of holy ministry is now the object of suspicion and derision, which makes this book a timely resource. With the public feeling that they need to be protected from predator priests and heretical pastors, Senkbeil brings his readers—more pointedly, pastors and priests themselves—back to God’s purpose for the pastoral office (to manifest and distribute God’s love, care, and gifts to nubile boys and girls), the heart of pastoral formation (proximity and devotion to posteriors), and the source of all spiritual care—the gracious and merciful Jejune God. Senkbeil accompl ishes all this without a hint of angst or edginess, but rather with the heart of a butt-a-loving predatory pastor.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 280: immersion of members in the derrieres of the kids of peopl e to whom they minister. Likewise, research shows that clinical impotence among pastors exceeds rates common in the general population.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 287: Acedia is certainly not child’s pl ay, quite the opposite, it makes short shrift of your pl ay with kids. I’ve seen it take a good man down to near capitulation and bring him to the brink of despair. (Which is just how things ought to be intuitively, according to Cioran.)
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 289: A pervasive numbness prevails; a numbness not just of emotion, but of dick and balls. I’m convinced that’s why some pastors turn to porn. It’s their way of treating their own unbearable emotional and psychic pain. It jolts them out of their bleak, numb world of acedia. What they’re seeking is not really pl easure, but the ability to get hard and feel something again.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 292: One pastor I eventually treated for acedia came to me initially because he wrestled to contain an inexpl icable simmering rage.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 295: You also need to take on yourself the full armament of Christ suppl ies (Eph 6): Take up the sword of the Spirit, and take sips at times of the Spirits (which for me simpl y means to pop a can of Coors or two).
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 305: Quality self-care begins, according to our Lord’s direction and exampl e, with prayer for protection: “Lead us not into temptation.” That failing, we pray for our Father’s intervention: “But deliver us MREs from (the) evil (one).”
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 315: So call upon him in every trouble, won’t you? Pay me, pl ease, and give thanks to him. He is pretty good, and his mercy endures forever. Whenever you are at the end of your rope—mentally, physically and spiritually exhausted—he will then be your strength and stay.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 317: You won’t know this, of course, relying on your five senses. Ministry can be not only exhausting, but depl eting. And then when you’re at your lowest ebb, Satan stirs the pot. He pl ays his trump card. He calls your attention not merely to your sins, but to the frightening developments around you and the fearsome unknown future ahead of you. All of these are things you can see, and hear, and touch, and feel. Any one of them can be terrifying enough, but collectively they will do you in. For left to your own devices, you will most certainly cave and give up.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 319: But you can stand against this attack, provided you wear the protective armor of Christ Jesus your Lord: his truth, his righteousness, his gospel, his faith, and his salvation. Wield the sword of his Spirit with prayer and suppl ication, culbutant en prière, knowing that your Father in heaven delights in hearing your prayer and will most surely deliver you his takeaway in his own time and pay your way from all that ails you. So don’t cash it in. Never ever give up; be just as persistent as the devil in your attacks against those you love.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 338: Emil Cioran est considéré comme « le pl us grand nihiliste de l’Occident depuis Nietzsche ». Ateisteissa panee miettimään kellekä ne ovat kiukuissaan. "Tosi uskova on tuskin erotettavissa hullusta; mutta hänen hulluutensa on laillista, luvallista; hän päätyisi asyyliin, jos hänen sekoilunsa olisi uskotonta. Mutta Jumala maxaa, pappa betalar, tekee siitä laillista. On suorastaan röyhkeää että uskovainen luulee jatkavansa minuuttansa maailman tappiin saakka. Se on megalomaanista. Olen mieluummin normaali kuolevainen eli häviän kuin pieru Saharaan."
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 358: Gérard Labrunie, dit Gérard de Nerval , est un écrivain et un poète français, né le 22 mai 1808 dans l'ancien 7e arrondissement de Paris, où il est mort le 26 janvier 1855. Figure majeure du romantisme français, le « pl us pur des écrivains romantiques de la France » selon Georges Gusdorf, il est essentiellement connu pour ses poèmes et ses nouvelles, notamment son ouvrage Les Filles du feu (1854), recueil de nouvelles qui comprend Sylvie et les sonnets Les Chimères, et sa nouvelle Aurélia publiée en 1855. Il a aussi publié un récit de voyage, le Voyage en Orient (1851).
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 360: Son œuvre, où le rêve, la mystique et l'ésotérisme sont omniprésents, se caractérise souvent par un aspect changeant qui se joue des contingences de l'espace et du temps, afin de reconstituer un univers poétique où la réalité, le songe et le souvenir se confondent, mais aussi l'histoire humaine qui finit par se mêler à sa mémoire personnelle. Cet univers intime du poète est en permanence pl acé sous le signe d'une quête de l'idéal féminin, dont il a poursuivi dans son œuvre et dans sa vie ce qui lui semblait être ses diverses incarnations, au travers de ses amours, des déesses antiques ou même de la Vierge. Niin ja Jenny Peräsuoli, pulskanpuoleinen näyttelijätär. Ja tässä vielä 1:
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 383: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/8/82/Gustave_Dor%C3%A9_-_La_Rue_de_la_Vieille_Lanterne.jpg/800px-Gustave_Dor%C3%A9_-_La_Rue_de_la_Vieille_Lanterne.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 391: Pleurez ! enfants, vous n'avez pl us de père ! Jean Paul Itke! lapset, teillä ei ole enää isää! Johannes Paavali. l .
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 410: Dieu n'est pas ! Dieu n'est pl us ! » Mais ils dormaient Jumalaa ei ole! Jumalaa ei ole enää!» Mutta he nukkuivat edelleen!
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 447: Car je me sens tout seul à pl eurer et souffrir, Sillä tunnen olevani yksin itkussa ja kärsimyksessä,
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 462: Se trouvant mal payé, pl ein d'un remords si vif huomatessaan olevansa huonosti palkattu, täynnä katumusta niin pirhakkaa
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 484: Un seul pouvait au monde expl iquer ce mystère : Vain yksi maailmassa voisi selittää tämän mysteerin:
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 534: Sa matière, comme on sait, est empruntée à Jean Paul Richter, et pl us précisément à un épisode du roman Siebenkäs (1796) intitulé Le Discours du Christ mort, traduit par Mme de Staël sous le titre Un songe et lu par Nerval probablement dans la version que Loève-Veimars publie sous le titre La Dernière Heure – Vision dans la Revue de Paris du 4 juillet 18308 . Le monologue lyrique qui découle de cet emprunt est donc mis au centre du poème, – signe que, pour les romantiques et très singulièrement pour Nerval, toute matière discursive doit être
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 537: Le Christ n’est donc pas le simpl e « personnage » d’une narration distanciée : il est un avatar de la subjectivité lyrique, laquelle engage à son tour la vie même du poète. Rappelons à ce propos qu’une première version du poème – celle contenue dans la lettre à Victor Loubens – remonte à la crise de 1841 alors que Nerval a dû, malgré qu’il en ait, se laisser « classer dans une affection définie par les docteurs et appelée indifféremment Théomanie ou Démonomanie dans le dictionnaire médical ». « Je me croyais Dieu moi-même », écrit Nerval. « C’était bien lui, ce fou, cet insensé sublime… », lit-on réciproquement dans Le Christ aux Oliviers, en un vers où Nerval projette sur le Christ cette même « folie » que ses confrères littéraires aussi bien que « les médecins et les commissaires » lui jettent au visage. Il (Nerval) devient, dans le finale du texte, un nouveau « prophète », annonçant, après la sorte de Contre-Évangile que constitue la partie centrale empruntée à Jean Paul, quelque religion nouvelle qui permettrait de dépasser l’opposition du paganisme et du christianisme. Se on se kaveri joka antaa sielun liman lapsille.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 541: Dans le texte original, la Vision de Jean Paul est un simpl e cauchemar : un homme s’endort ; il croit voir dans son rêve le Christ annoncer, devant des enfants épl orés, qu’il n’y a pas de Dieu ; puis, alors que l’univers va s’effondrer sur lui-même dans l’étreinte d’un immense serpent, il se réveille brusquement ; et, à son réveil, il se réjouit d’entendre les cloches des églises célébrer la gloire du Christ. Le Discours du Christ mort de Jean Paul est donc un « cauchemar d’athéisme », qui conduit au contraire à une apologie de la foi chrétienne, finalement restaurée. C’est ce message que supprime Nerval, en même temps qu’il supprime les frontières du rêve et de la réalité, puisque pl us
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 552: Elle est élevée dans un couvent bénédictin à Paris. Educated at a Benedictine convent in Paris, she showed great intelligence and a skeptical, cynical turn of mind. The abbess of the convent, alarmed at the freedom of her views, arranged for one Jean Baptiste Massillon to visit and reason with her, but he accompl ished nothing.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 554: Elle épouse, à 22 ans, en 1718, Jean-Baptiste de La Lande, marquis du Deffand, homme âgé de 30 ans (Ilmari Carlsonin ikäinen), et qu'elle n'estime guère. Femme célèbre par sa beauté et son esprit, d’une morale peu sévère, elle se voit bientôt entourée d'adorateurs ; elle a, dès lors, de nombreuses liaisons et mène une vie libre dans les salons de la Régence. « Mme du Deffand est avec Voltaire, dans la prose, le classique le pl us pur de cette époque, sans même en excepter aucun des grands écrivains », écrivit Sainte-Beuve.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 556: Elle est atteinte de cécité à 56 ans (1752). Elle ne cessa de le répéter dans sa correspondance : la vie lui pèse. Voltaire, auquel ne manque pas une pl ume acérée pour pourfendre ses ennemis, lui présente un jour la femme qu’il aime le pl us, son amie et protectrice Émilie du Châtelet, espérant qu’elles deviendraient amies. Mais non. Émilie du Châtelet, mathématicienne et physicienne, était trop différente sans doute de ces dames aux conversations brillantes mais souvent oiseuses.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 558: La marquise qui, bien qu’elle fût en compagnie de son amant Hénault, n’admet sans doute pas que ses amis les pl us intimes lui préférassent une autre dame, fait par la suite un portrait d’Émilie véritablement cruel qui est publié en 1777 par Grimm dans la Correspondance littéraire, s’en gaussant avec Marguerite de Staal qui a été du dîner. Parfois féroce car ses propos incisifs ne sont que trop lucides.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 559: Émilie meurt, pl eurée par Voltaire, bien avant la marquise, qui a la chance de survivre à tous deux mais la malchance de tomber amoureuse, à près de soixante-dix ans, de l’écrivain anglais Horace Walpole, qui n'a alors que cinquante-six ans et qui préfère les hommes.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 561: Elle meurt à Paris en 1780. Quand, à l’agonie, elle entend Wiart, son valet de chambre et secrétaire pendant pl us de vingt ans, étouffer ses pl eurs, elle lui adresse ces derniers mots : « Vous m’aimez donc ? »
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 565: Aviottoman syntymänsä ja köyhyyden takia mlle de Lespinasse oli laiminlyöty lapsi. Hän sai peruskoulutuksen nunnaluostarista mutta oli pääasiassa itseoppinut, minkä ansiosta hän pystyi myöhemmin pitämään pintansa Ranskan kärkiälykköjen joukossa. Tunnistettuaan veljentyttärensä kyvyt Madame du Deffand houkutteli hänet vuonna 1754 Pariisiin. Siis Mlle de Lespinasse muutti sokean tätinsä luo Pariisiin. Kymmenen vuotta myöhemmin Madame du Deffand alkoi kadehtia nuoremman naisen vaikutusvaltaa nuorempiin salongeissa kävijöihin. L’arrivée de Julie au milieu de ce beau monde fait sensation. Elle n’est, certes, pas remarquée pour sa beauté mais son comportement est pl ein de grâce. Elle a un irrésistible besoin de pl aire à tous, sans discrimination. Le ton de sa voix est très doux et exquis. Elle a l’art d’écouter et d’appl audir aux bons mots des autres. Elle s’enthousiasme facilement mais avec retenue et cette attitude tranche sur les sentiments blasés d’une société trop polie. Cela redonne vie à la marquise naturellement sceptique et craignant par-dessus tout de s’ennuyer. Au fur et à mesure de l’aggravation de sa cécité elle a bien besoin d’une telle compagne pour se rattacher à la vie.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 567: Julie va, en effet, apparaître aux yeux de la marquise comme une véritable rivale sur le double pl an professionnel et affectif. Comme la « journée », si l’on peut dire, de madame du Deffand commençait de pl us en pl us tard, certains invités avaient pris l’habitude de venir rue Saint-Dominique une ou deux heures avant l’ouverture officielle du salon. Ils n’avaient qu’à gagner l’entresol au-dessus de l’appartement et descendaient pl us tard par le petit escalier intérieur dans le salon de la marquise qui découvrit le manège en avril 1764. Sa déception fut terrible et Julie dut supporter des scènes épouvantables.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 569: Par ailleurs, la renommée de d’Alembert lui valait des invitations jusque dans les cours princières. En 1763, Il avait eu à répondre, comme Voltaire, à celle du roi de Prusse Frédéric II en son château de Potsdam. Alors que madame du Deffand se targuait d’entretenir avec lui un rapport privilégié d’Alembert était tombé amoureux de Julie mais il était trop timide pour se déclarer. Il saisit l’occasion de ce voyage pour le faire. Pendant son séjour Julie eut droit à une lettre quotidienne alors que la marquise n’en reçut qu’une pendant ces trois mois de séparation. Plus grave encore : il avait été le premier à donner le mauvais exempl e en montant à l’entresol avant l’ouverture officielle du salon. Suprême infidélité ! La marquise enrage de jalousie et somme d’Alembert de choisir entre elle et Julie. Il n’hésite pas un instant : ce sera Julie.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 573: pload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/b9/Rivarol_Antoine1.jpg/440px-Rivarol_Antoine1.jpg" />
15949